Pulleet oli pobedat ja moskovitshitkin
ellauri001.html on line 1646: homo sapiensista uhka globaali.
ellauri001.html on line 1760:
Viiskytä yhdeksän syksynä svoboda loppuvi armas.
ellauri001.html on line 2308:
Partitiiviobjektina tässä esiintyvä substantiivi on entuudestaan tuntematon eikä sitä löydy nykysuomen sanakirjasta, mutta silti se ja koko säefragmentti onnistuu koskettamaan poikakoululaista jostain hyvin hyvin syvältä.
Ante obitum nemo supremaque funera felix.
Mas ainda no tocaste na grande força feminina, uma das forças mestras da transformação. - Eque força é essa? - Não continues a fazer-me perguntas tolas - respondeu Wicca. - Porque eu sei que sabes qual é. Brida sabia. O sexo.
Dodi! Viimeinkin sexiä! Paulo pääsee itse asiaan kirjan puolivälissä. Quando os homens estavam próximos de Deus, o sexo era a comunhão simbólica com a unidade divina. O sexo era o reencontro com o sentido da vida.
Joppajjo, bonobot, niihä se just on, pano on kaikist kivintä, se se on elämän tarkoitus: lisää elämää ja suuremmat lusikat, kauhat, suppilot ja melat. Mystikon ekstaasi on kuin mällin ruiskahdus, ja kääntäen, sanoo kaniguru expressis verbis.
Tässä Aarne menee mezään niin että kuuluu arkiryskettä. Sen tekemä vastakohtaisuus on keinotekoinen. Moraali on elukoiden silmässä just yhtä paljon kuin komiikka, ihan samassa perssilmässä vieläpä, yhtä paljon/vähän mielivaltaista on molemmissa. Huvittavaa myös, et noi Aarnen katkismuxen lauseet puuttuu Lutherilta. Jeesuxen kärsimys oli mainio asia, tappaminen on joskus ihan paikallaan. Joosua esinahkakasoineen noudatti Jumalan lupausta ja käskyä. Armo, laupeus eli ilmaisexi saanti on tietty hieno juttu kermaperse Aarnen mielestä, mut parempi vielä on ilmaisexi ottaminen, sanois Marx, Robin Hood tai Harald Hirmuinen.
ellauri024.html on line 535: Mutta myös sitten kun arvostelemme komiikkaa (puhu vaan izestäsi Kinnusen akan poika) pidämme sitä objektiivisesti hyvänä ja huonona.
Mitä vittua!? Tää on tämmönen hyvä-paha absolutisti. Niin yxiliitisellä arvomaailmalla varustettu tyyppi voi olla hyvä koomikko vaan luontojaan, oikeastaan vastoin parempaa tietoaan. Siltä ikäänkuin lipsahtelee hyviäkin vizejä. Kuten aiemminkin olen sanonut, se että tykkää Chaplinista voi olla oire jostain pahemmasta. Tuloxelle nauravat vain hyeenat.
ellauri024.html on line 638: Alaviite: Ifikles oli Herkkulesta päivää nuorempi, synnytys lie ollut vaikea. Se toimi Herkkuleen kakkoskuskina kitkerään loppuun saakka, vaikka isobroidi oli epis ja heitti koko ajan, ja vahingossa tappo siltä pennut tavanomaisen hulluuskohtauxensa aikana.
ellauri024.html on line 678: Pär Lagerkvist on ikävän oloinen ruåzalainen, nobelisti kotikenttäedulla. Pietistikodista ja virsikirjasta liian pian Darwiniin ja Marxiin pusakan kääntänyt hyyppä, joka itki loppuelämän omaa ja muiden pahuutta, ahisti kun ei ollut enää jumalaa antamassa satikutia ja sitte anteexi, älä enää koskaan tee niin. Hyvin ikävä aivoknääpiö. Ei ihme et Archie tuntee lukkarin rakkautta sen samannimisen kirjan kääpiöön. Se on itekkin kaiken naureskelun takana tollanen kolea synkän armoton kolmannen Moosexen kirjan Mooses. Ingmar Bergmanissa on tota samaa. Langenneita prematurely lauenneita enkeleitä, pikeentyneitä pietistejä, masokristillisiä. Koittasivat päättää: olis joko entisvanhaan tapaan kilttejä ja kunnollisia tukat suittuna, tai sit iloisia ilkeitä ja kampaamattomia ilman omantunnontuskia, eikä tollasia angstaavia vellihousuja. Tää on vanhan ajan modernismia.
ellauri024.html on line 719: Pahempa seuraa ellen erehdy, Arska tarjoo komiikan sankarin mallixi jotain Rokan kaltasta vizailevaa tappajaa, joka ei ammu ihmisiä vaan vihollisia. Irtopäitä lentelee, verta ja suolenpätkiä. Kazoo kuin Indiana Jones hölmistyneenä huvittavaa veiziä heiluttavaa rättipää pelleä, vetää rivollin ja ampuu sen hengiltä suoralta kädeltä. Ryhmy ja Romppainen. Asterix ja Obelix. El Zorro ja kenraali Xavier. Jerry Cotton ja Phil Decker. Batman ja Robin. Tintti ja Kapteeni Kapu. Puovo Lipponen ja Kalle Kustaa Korkki. Mikki ja Hessu. Ilmiselvä sankari. Yhdellä ainoalla vantteran jalkansa potkaisulla kenraali lennätti miehen läpi seinäpaneelin. Mies lensi kuin tikkapelin tikka. Miehessä on ainesta lentäjäxi, kenraali huomautti. Revi siitä huumoria.
ellauri024.html on line 1003: Eskin Teppo-Raimon järjestelmäjargonilla jäykistetyn vanukkaan avainsanat ovat kasvu, parannus, muutos, älli, ja järjestelmät (etenkin ne, muistuttaa Teppo, ettei totuus unohtuisi. Onhan tää sentään systeemitieteiden laitos eikä pelkän kukoistamisen.) Järjestelmiä ovat vauvanhoito, perhe, työ, suhteet, kaverit, some, hobby, tiede, taide, uskonto ja urheilu, ravizemus, talous, hengellisyys (taas, tää on tärkee Eskille), ruumis, koti, yritystoiminta, musisointi, isänmaa, internet, YK, armeija, luontopalvelut, vain joitain mainitaxemme. Ne on kaikki samaa, yhtä mössöä, kun niitä kaikkia kekkaa kuzua järjestelmixi. Kokonaisuus on "joteskin enemmän" kuin sen osat. Huoh.
ellauri024.html on line 1073: Kiitollisuudella Pamela maxelee ettei vaan jää kellekkään velkaa. Obrigada. Much obliged.
ellauri024.html on line 1119: Hoblan tv-recensent Malin Slotte, joka muistuttaa
ellauri024.html on line 1129: Meediat kuten Hobla on täysin rinnoin mukana.
ellauri024.html on line 1235: kuten erittelen tuossa obskyyrissä paperissa.
ellauri024.html on line 1241: ja taivuttelemalla. Silti ne on objektiivisia,
ellauri024.html on line 1266: parasta on objektiivinen tosiasia, jonka voisi
ellauri024.html on line 1398: Monet eivät paenneet nazeja Saksassa, koska eivät uskoneet keskitysleireihin, vaikka kuulivat jopa lähiomaisilta huhuja. Aivan samoin ekokatastrofin torjumisen vaatiessa nykyisestä elintasosta luopumista eivät äänivaltaiset kulutusrobotit kykene tekemään päätöstä suunnanmuutoxesta. Siihen ei riitä Tri Niiniluodon päätösteoreettiset mallit eikä von Wrightin iltahartaudet, analyyttinen raittiusklinikka, jossa potilaille karjutaan aamusta alkaen: Torjukaa irrationaalisuus! Ordnung muss sein!
ellauri024.html on line 1402: Suomessa von Wrightin lällyfilosofian perintö jakautui kahtia: Ilkka Niiniluoto jatkoi torjuntaa maalivahtina ja Esa Saarinen kuljetti kiekon Espoon päätyyn. On myönnettävä Saarisen "kadonnutta puberteettia ezimässä" tyypin kulttuurikritiikin olevan hilpeämpää kuin von Wrightin ja Niiniluodon latenssifilosofia. Niiniluoto väittää kyynisexi nihilismixi kaikkea tutkimusta, joka ei ole todenkaltaisuuden näköistä. Vuosisatamme filosofia teoxen (sitäkään en ole lukenut, en edes tiedä miltä kansi näytti) esipuheessa, paljastaneixi missä on vika: filosofit on aina olleet tiennäyttäjiä. Ulkopuolinen asiaa tuntematon voisi ajatella, että suomalaisen filosofian suurperheen pitäisi kiireesti asettaa vaari holhouxeen. (No nythän se on tarpeetonta, suomalainen filosofia on kuollut jo luonnollisen kuoleman.) 1987 se näytti ennenaikaiselta, sillä von Wright ei ollut vielä lähelläkään silloin vielä huokuvien Kuusen veljesten, noiden suomalaisen kulttuurikritiikin Pekan ja Pätkän muodostamaa esseistiikan nollapistettä, AKS-henkistä Pentti Linkolan ylistelyä ja muita riman ohituxia, sosiobiologista führerin ezintää tästä ministerin maailmasta. Vaik ei pidä aliarvoioida sosiobiologian ja kasvitieteen soveltuvuutta kuusten salatun elämän tutkimuxessa.
ellauri024.html on line 1456: Money is not the problem (pecunia non olet), but the manure and the pigeon poop.
ellauri025.html on line 77: Vuonna 1252 Tuomas palasi Pariisiin suorittaakseen maisterin tutkintonsa. Hänellä oli tässä hieman vaikeuksia, koska yliopiston professorit hyökkäsivät pennittömiä kerjäläisveljistöjä vastaan, mutta lopulta hän sai kerätyxi rahat tutkintoon, josta sai hikisesti approbaturin. Vuonna 1256 hän ja hänen sivuvaununsa Bonaventura nimitettiin tosta vaan teologian tohtoreiksi, ja hän alkoi luennoida teologiasta Pariisissa sekä Roomassa ja muissa Italian kaupungeissa, kuten Viterbossa ja Orvietossa. Siitä lähtien hänen elämänsä oli pelkkää kovaa tuloxen tekoa. Hän palveli sääntökuntaansa, teki usein pitkiä matkoja ja neuvoi paavia useaan otteeseen sukupuoliasioissa.
ellauri025.html on line 104: St. Thomas was a vocal supporter of the death penalty. This was based on the theory (found in natural moral law), that the state has not only the right, but the duty to protect its citizens from enemies, both from within, and without. Aquinas advocated the death penalty for obstinate heretics.
ellauri025.html on line 160: Fantasiakirjailija Robert E. Howard yhdisti sankarinsa Conanin kimmerialaisiin näiden mystisen ja raa'an maineen takia. Howardin fiktiiviset kimmerialaiset kuitenkin ovat fiktiivisten kelttien esivanhempia, eikä heillä ole historiallisten kimmerialaisten kanssa mitään muuta yhteistä kuin nimi.
ellauri025.html on line 164: Herulit olivat germaaniheimo, joka oli luultavasti alun perin lähtöisin Itämeren rannoilta. Kansainvaellusajalla herulit liikkuivat ympäri Eurooppaa, ja heidän pääjoukkonsa asettui Krimin niemimaalle, jossa he sekoittuivat gootteihin. Herulijoukkoja palveli myös Bysantin armeijassa. Vuonna 267 herulit hyökkäsivät Aigeianmerelle ja tuhosivat useita Kreikan kaupunkeja. Yksi heruliryhmä perusti noin vuonna 470 Pannoniaan kuningaskunnan, jonka langobardit kuitenkin kukistivat jo vuonna 510. Tämän jälkeen herulit sulautuivat vähitellen muihin kansoihin.
ellauri025.html on line 197: Carlsonienkin sukupuussa kiipeilee heruleja ja langobardeja: Harirod, Maginhart (Mammo), Frotgar ym. Doch sind solche frühmittelalterlichen Stammbäume (fast) immer fiktiv. Latvapäässä on ugreja ja latvalahoa. Ugh.
ellauri025.html on line 386: Tylyn mutta fragiilin oloinen kaunis Esther Sanditonissa ei huoli Napoleonixi sonnustautunutta loordia koska luulee rakastavansa veljeään Edwardia. Lady Denham vimmastuu ja ärähtää kuin Tina Turner: Love!? What's love got to do with it? Avioliitossa ei ole kyse rakkaudesta, se on bisnistä, diili jossa sovitaan meemien ja reviirien siirrosta. Hesiodos on tismalleen samaa mieltä. Tismalleen!!! se huutaisi pikku jurrissa juotuaan ize käyttämäänsä kotiviiniä, kuin Obelix ja Aladobix Asterixissa. Kunhan ei saisi maxavaivoja. Maalaistollo.
ellauri025.html on line 431: Onhan näissä ohjeissa paljonkin talonpoikaisjärkeä, ja onnex suhteellisen vähän on ohjeistusten väliin pantu hihhulointia, ihan minimimäärä jumalaista perustelua. Tulee etsimättä mieleen, että muinaisaikain jumalat oli mikrobien personointia. Nehän on suht näkymättömiä, aina paikalla, näkee kaiken, ja rankaisevat julmasti jos pettää hygienia. Uhrisavukin ja eläinten paistaminen ennen syöntiä on antiseptistä. Toisaalta jos uhrituleen pantiin jo vähän pilaantuneita paloja, ei niitä oikeestaan paranekkaan enää napsia.
ellauri025.html on line 435: Loppuosa kirjasta on maamiehen kalenteri, samanlainen rautaisannos taikauskoa kuin kiinalaisilla on vielä tänä päivänä. Jaa onhan meilläkin vielä horoskooppeja. Sellasesta tykkää kaikki obsessiivisuuteen taipuvaiset, on ihqua kun on yxikäsitteisiä ohjesääntöjä, joista ei saa poiketa. Ei saa astua katukivetyksen rajoille. Niistä tykkäsi myös Kimmo Koskenniemi.
ellauri025.html on line 603: Emmy on jostain maalta, köyhä, Saga-Lillin hammaslääkäreillä oli sentään Grobboon ainut kivitalo. Saga-Lill kuulostaa ize asiassa enemmän Monikalta.
ellauri025.html on line 704: kun Emmy jätti sen? Mitä ne Grobboon likat näkee tässä Lasse Linnan doppelgängerissä enivei? Teflonpintainen lällykkä, ontto pönttö.
ellauri025.html on line 710: Mix niitä edes tarvitaan, ex ois riittäny että Nathan ja vetelä Gusten veti Saschaa wiixeen kahdestaan? No ehkä ei, Nathan on kääpiö (varmaan hobitti, koska sillä on isommat jalat kuin Gustenilla) ja Gustenista ei
ellauri025.html on line 730: 1698 Aug. 7: "2. Samma dag angaffs klockaren Ambros Hansson för det han S.Jacobi dag under predijkan haar morlat och sachta talat, utom at nogon kunde förstå ell. Höra hwad han sade; item när han gått med hofwen och skulle den ifrån sig leggia i Sakristian, haar han snafwat på törskelen. Klockaren Ambros Hansson ursächtade sig, sägandes sådant intet wara skedt aff dryckenskap, utan huwudswagheet som honom påkommit, aff den siukdom, som han kort tillförene warit beswärat utaff, hwilket somblige närwarande bewitnade; hwarföre stältes till honom en allfwarsam förmaning at taga sig grannerligen tillwara för hwarjehande förargelser, hwilket han ock utloffwade." (Se originaltext från 1698 HÄR.)
ellauri025.html on line 752: Saschan muzi tarjoo bästa sugjobb i Santa Monica med omnejd. Mekin käytiin Santa Monicassa 70-luvulla, tai Santa Barbarassa ainakin. Ei kyllä tilattu imujobeja Saschan muzilta, surfattiin vaan Snoopyllä. Pappa heter Klas-Åke, Åke Hokan siis. Bling bling bling. Mix tää ämmä kirjoittaa tämmösiä 7 päivää lehden juttuja, tietääkö se niistä yhtään sen enempää kuin muutkaan kumikaula Alibin ja Ilta-Pulun lukijat? Eikös riittäis ne juorut jotka on muutenkin jo jaossa, pitääkö niitä saxia vielä lisää ehjästä kankaasta?
ellauri025.html on line 760: Lyhyt kertaus. Helmikuussa 2008 (12 v sitten siis) Gusten väkisinmakaa koulutoverinsa Sascha Ankarin, 18, juhlissa Nathan Häggertin vanhempien talossa Kylmäkoskella. Muut olivat Axel Axelsson, John C (ei kai!) ja Nathan Häggert ize. Gusten ei ize nouse pukille ennenkuin loppupeleissä. Lieventävä asianhaara. Niinhän tekee sorsamieskin, kun sorsajengi on joukkobylsinyt sen puolison. Kyl nää moraalijutut on sentään jänniä. Säännöt on kuin lassipallossa. On eri asia, jos puuhun koskee ennenkuin on kiertänyt krokettiportin eikä ole tiikeri.
ellauri025.html on line 834: **We have a new information about height&weight of Monika Fagerholm. It was submitted by Frannie Jonas, 38 years old. Job: (Sign Writer, Machine).
ellauri026.html on line 29: Poikasena mä luin Punahousuja, vaikka Punahousu ize vähän vitutti samalla tavalla kuin Fred ja Kimmo myöhemmin. Holier-than-thou, tärkeilijä, besserwisseri. Hehheh, ymmärränhän mä leikkiä, saakoon leikki sijansa, mut pojat, nyt on meillä tähdellisempää agendalla. Kääritäänpä hihat, selvitetään marssijärjestys. Suomalaispojat oli etelävaltiolaisen punahousun koomillinen kevennys. Kerran niinkin päin. Punavyö olikin sisällissodassa kannustanut orjuutta. Mä kevensin tietokonelingvistiikan yksikön voimakaxikkoa. Kimmo olis Mikki Hiiri, Fred Hessu Hopo, mä Pluto. Pluto olet oikea Pelle! Paizi masennuxen kausina. Sillon oli häntä koipien välissä. Vähän vinossa. Mulla oli tapana vähän nilkuttaa kun masennus oli pahin. Ja kädet ei tuntuneet enää omilta. Suussa oli metallin maku. Olen athabas. Nimeni on Toobe.
ellauri026.html on line 94: En nyt tahtonutkaan väittää, että meidän herrojen suorittama naisten sorto ylipäänsä, joka nyttemmin kaikki kulkee samalla nimellä misogynia, perustuu johkin freudilaiseen skizoiluun. Siihen riittää ihan tavallinen darwinismi, vahvemman oikeus. Ei sen tarvi olla mitään vihaa, etuilua vaan. Ei pedot vihaa saaliseläimiä, jotka antautuu syötäväxi kiltisti. Jos ne lähtee keulimaan niin on toinen ääni kellossa. Ensin on vihaisia sorretut, sitten sortajat, kun niiden reviiriä uhataan. Jos naiset nyt nousee hännän alta, se voi johtua vaan siitä, että ne on nyt vahvempia. Kiitos vaan robotit!
ellauri026.html on line 102: Pienenä ihmettelin mixi kenkäraja on raja. Ei se olekaan sama sana etymologisen sanakirjan mielestä. Mä ostin etymologisen sanakirjan osa osalta "omilla" rahoilla lukioaikana, siitä oli silloin saatavana vaan nidottu versio. Tuolla se on vielä hyllyssä. Tutu-tädiltä perin hiljan sidotun kappaleen. Sisältö näyttää olevan ennallaan. Sen mukaan raja on loppuun kulunut tai muuten huono kapine. Niinkuin roju. Rajasuutarit paikkaa kenkärajoja. Ne on ob">snobeja. Se toinen raja on venäjästä, kraj, niinkuin Ukraina, rajamaa.
ellauri026.html on line 225: The idea is there, but all the lingering emphasis in the original has been smoothed away. This, too, unfortunately, is typical of the whole. I have said that Wilson’s translation reads easily, and it does, like a modern novel: at shockingly few points does one ever need to stop and think. There are no hard parts; no difficult lines or obscure notions; no aesthetic arrest either; very little that jumps out as unusual or different. Wilson has set out, as she openly confesses, to produce an Odyssey in a “contemporary anglophone speech,” and this results in quite a bit of conceptual pruning. If you wait for the “Homeric tags,” the phrases that contained so much Greek culture they have been quoted over and over again by Greeks ever since—well, you are apt to miss them as they go by. A famous one occurs in book 24, when Odysseus and Telemachus are about to go into battle together: Odysseus tells Telemachus not to disgrace him, and Telemachus boasts that he need not fear. Laertes, Odysseus’s father, exclaims (Wilson’s translation), “Ah, gods! A happy day for me! My son and grandson are arguing about how tough they are!”
ellauri026.html on line 232: You´re so vain, lauloi Carly Simon Warren Beatylle. Beaty (1937) oli hyvä amerikan jalkapallisti ja luokkansa puheenjohtaja. Näyttelijä, filmimoguli. Yx USAn monista Jörkistä. Kova jätkä mutta turha kuten Jörkka (1934). Törkeä Dick Tracy. Nykyään onkin jo rannekellopuhelimia. Tunnettu lukuisista naisjutuista. Veti koipeen Carlya, teki paljon pekonia rannalla, kylvi hukkakauroja, kunnes asettui aloilleen Annetten kaa. Äijempi kuin Jone Nikula, julkkixista turhimpia. Toinen samanmoinen on nobelisti Zimmermann, yhtä turhamainen vaikka ruipelo, jolta Joan Baez ei saanut timanttia vaan ruostetta. Isoja ja pieniä setämiehiä. Puutarhatonttuja takit avoinna.
ellauri026.html on line 325: Britit ja hollanderit oli kovia kolonialisteja ja ekoja kapitalisteja just six. Möi, osti, vaihtoi ja omisti orjia. Niinkuin nytkin. Helmi on hakemassa Erasmus-vaihtoon Skotlantiin. Tai Leydeniin, ei kovin kauas Rotterdamista. Erasmuskin oli vaihdossa briteissä. Se oli ennen brexittiä. Ennen EU:takin. Saman homman nimi on nyttemmn globalisaatio. Orjat joita ei voi korjata menee vaihtoon.
ellauri026.html on line 403: Skolastikot kuvaa helvetin niin tarkkaan kuin ne olis ize olleet siellä enimmän aikaa mittailemassa. Ja lisää sinne uuden piirin, kahdexannen, niin ison ja tilavan, että ne mahtuu sinne kavereineen pelaamaan vaikka potkupalloa. Ja seuraavaxi tulee uskonmiehet, munkit, molemmista nimityxistä aika etääntyneet, ei ne välitä uskonnosta, ja niitä pörrää kaikkialla kuin kärpäsiä. Jengi väistelee niitä kuin pahan onnen enteitä. Ne pitää kunnianaan olla oppimattomia ja saarnata mitä sylki suuhun tuo ihan takin hihasta. Jotkut ottaa kovaa hintaa palveluista, toiset kerää rahaa kuulijoilta kapakoissa, kilpailee kerjäläisten kanssa rovoista. On olevinaan mukavia apostoleja typerine juttuineen. On tarkkoja kuin liivijengit bränditunnuxista, millainen rozi ja mitkä merkit siinä, miten pitkä letti, paljonko unta palloon per yö. Ja halvexii sitten toisen jengin munkkeja niiden vermeistä. Jotkut ei huoli rahaa, mut kyllä viiniä ja naisia. Brändinimiä joka lähtöön: jotkut on vyöveikkoja, jotkut pieniä, jotkut pikkuruisia, jotkut ruusuristiläisiä; sit on benediktiinejä ja bernardiineja, karmeliittoja ja augustiineja, vilholaisia ja jakobiineja. Kristillisiä ei ketkään.
ellauri026.html on line 459: Ylläri et Fima ei tunnu hirveesti arvostavan Erasmuxen persoonaa. Sen mielestä E.R., kuten renessanssin kaverit yleensäkin, oli pelkuri ja pikku narsisti, joka toi izeään esille joka paikassa. Sen olis pitäny yrittää olla objektiivisempi, kuten Emerton. Homous voi olla myös yhtenä esteenä. Jotain sotkua tuli Bolognassakin kotiopettajalle pikku suojattien kaa. Fima pahexuu Gerard Gerardsonia vähän joka asiasta. Se on Jefan mielestä ärsyttävä valittaja, kermaperse jolle ei mikään tunnu kelpaavan. No vittu, tässä on kyllä pata kattilaa soimaamassa. Efraimilla, Harvardin proffalla, oli puo vähintään yhtä syvällä kermapytyssä.
ellauri026.html on line 477: Geertin iskä pakeni Roomaan kun sen ja Eran äidin Helmin salakihlat tuli ilmi. Sitä huijattiin et pikku Geert ja äiti Helmi oli muka kuolleet. Se rupes papix kuten sen ahneet veljet oli suunnitelleetkin. Sit oli jo myöhästä. Sekin on Jefan mielestä joteskin hämärästi Eran vika. Jotain hämärää onkin koko jutussa, kert Eralla oli isovelikin. Tulee mieleen JJ Rusoon hämärästi hävinnyt isobroidi. Ehkä se oli velipuoli jostain sen isän aikaisemmasta heilasta. (Molemmat vanhemmat elivät vielä Eran käydessä koulua, kuolivat nelikymppisinä.)
ellauri026.html on line 481: Noi lafkat oli takuulla ihan hirveitä paikkoja. Mut taas Jefa rypistelee nenäänsä ja pahexuu, et nehän oli just sopivia pikku Eralle. Pekka-setä oli ahne paskiainen joka hamusi Geertin perintöä. Jefa suvaizee epäillä Eran sanoja, koska Pekka setä toimitti luostareihin muitakin kakaroita. Häh? Mikä tampio tää Jefa oikeen on? Mikä hemmetti sitä vaivaa? Varmaan homofobia.
ellauri026.html on line 493: Jefa ei ole huomaavinaan Eran homorakkautta nuoreen ystäväänsä Rogeriin. Eihän tämmösestä sovi jumaluusopin professorin olla selvillä, saati sitten siitä puhua. Homofoobit on aika usein kaappihomoja. (Tässä mun täytyy taas vähän karistella epäluuloja: emmä ole homofoobinen, mun parhaissa kavereissakin on vasenkätisiä. Musta on vaan kiva puhua asioista joista jotkut kauhistuu. Se on osa koko tän runoelman pointtia: mix kauhistua luonnonilmiötä, mix koittaa olla niin suu muikulla p.c. Naturalia non sunt turpia. Kaikesta ei tarvi pitää, muttei tarvi sentään pöyristyä.)
ellauri028.html on line 89: Initially, a surviving one of his daughters, Clara Clemens, objected to its publication in March 1939, probably because of its controversial and iconoclastic views on religion, claiming it presented a "distorted" view of her father. Henry Nash Smith helped change her position in 1960. Clara explained her change of heart in 1962 saying that "Mark Twain belonged to the world" and that public opinion had become more tolerant. (Ehkä se myös tarvizi vähän pätäkkää leivän syrjäxi.) She was also influenced to release the papers by her annoyance with Soviet reports that her father's ideas were being suppressed in the United States. (Ei Laika ole ainut koira radalla. Vuosi 1962 oli Kuuban kriisi, kylmä sota kuumeni. Popovin nuhruista mutta optimistista nuoruutta.) The papers were selected, edited and sequenced for the book in 1939 by Bernard DeVoto. (Sota tuli väliin, jumala piti varmistaa voittajien puolelle. No ainahan se on voittajien puolella. Tai sit se haluu antaa opetuxen tai sillä on joku ovelampi suunnitelma mielessä.)
ellauri028.html on line 114: Words vulgar and offensive to other ears were a common language to him. Anyone who ever knew Mark heard him use them freely, forcibly, picturesquely in his unrestrained conversation. Whitman and the Bible are no more obscene than Nature herself—no more obscene than a manure pile, out of which come roses and cherries.
ellauri028.html on line 118: “The meaning of the word 'obscene,'” the Justice indicated, “as legally defined by the courts is: tending to stir the sex impulses or to lead to sexually impure and lustful thoughts."
ellauri028.html on line 129: noble lineage; that he despises these literary canaille;
ellauri028.html on line 132: nobility is defiled by contact with Shakespeare, etc., and
ellauri028.html on line 198: Apparently man is a selfish prick that can't think for himself and relies on "outside influences". He is a chameleon. He is nothing but a mere machine. Well, at least according to Twain. Man is a fraud and only lives for himself. He is really driving home this point that everyone is selfish and acts out of selfish needs (big surprise?), even if viewed (publicly and personally) as a self-sacrificing person. My question is; who cares? If the end result is the same, what does the actions matter. Let's say, saving a woman from a burning house. Twain says you do this out of making yourself feel good and avoiding the pain of not saving the woman, nothing else; the woman comes second to your own need of feeling good. But regardless of how it makes you feel, you still saved the woman in the end. The good is still done, even though you did it for yourself. Forget how the action was achieved. What does it matter if we refer to this as "self sacrificing" or "selfishness". Answer me this question, Twain! THE ACTION REMAINS THE SAME!!!.... I feel this must have been written during a time when everyone was going around smugly proclaiming to be self-sacrificing do-gooders and self-proclaimed religious nuts while really being shitty people; which had to be the most annoying thing ever. I guess it feels a bit outdated and I think people who naively go around claiming that they are "self-sacrificing do-gooders" are simply laughed at in our post modern times as smug assholes who need to get off their high horse (high horse? who owns a fucking horse nowadays, anyways?). I feel it is pretty accepted now that those who do good are doing them for their own selfish gains and the view of acceptance by others, at least I think this is the case. I don't know cause I don't know do-gooders, everyone I know (including myself) are dicks and more concerned with their celluar phones and creating social dating websites on the internet in vain attempts to pick up chicks only to drink alone and desperately spend several hours harassing women on social dating sites until one, out of pity, decides to respond to your 50 private messages, which then they foolishly decides to set up a date with you; only for you to be disappointed and stood up; which results in more drinking and paying a "dancer" to give you a hand job behind the goodwill on a Saturday night....
ellauri028.html on line 202: Now he is on this kick about how man never thinks for himself. He is a chameleon conforming to whatever outside influences he puts himself in. This is pretty interesting stuff here. I apologize that these reviews have become rather flat. The amount of times I have used the word "interesting" to describe things in a vague manner is so blindly obvious and so boring, I can't believe I go on writing these things (and you keep reading them?!) Where is this going to get me, doing these shitty reviews? Does anyone care? Do I really care? I think I need a girlfriend (this is a cry for help)...Anyways, the book is psychological and philosophical or some shit... go read the goddamn thing yourself...I need a drink...
ellauri028.html on line 242: I'm a robot , I'm just a machine!!!!!
ellauri028.html on line 252: Ei jäänyt Fatima kiinni CAPTCHA:sta. Peltiheikki livahti kuin mekaaninen leikkikoira veräjästä, sellainen kankeasti kävelevä ja haukkuva, jolla on kovamuovinen patterilaatikko mahan alla ja on-off nappula. Batteries not included. En ymmärrä mix kakrut haluu niitä, tai niitä liioitellun isosilmäisiä kummituxia. (Tai ymmärränhän mä, ne on koneita. Ilman on-off nappulaa, valitettavasti.) But seriously, eihän näistä arvosteluistakaan tiedä enää mitkä on tekoälyn tuotteita. Nettihän on jo täynnä botteja. Turingin testi vuotaa kuin seula. Todennäköisesti tyhmimmät arvostelut tulee vielä kuitenkin lihaa ja verta olevilta apinoilta. Ehkä CAPTCHA:t testaakin jo sitä. En ole robotti, olen pönttö.
ellauri028.html on line 269: Hoblan ristikossa törmännyt sanaan hesperidit, ne neidot jotka antoi
ellauri028.html on line 291: Mä kexin oman nimenkin objektin sijalle, ja aika hölmön,
ellauri028.html on line 296: robottikäsien väsääminen yksinkertaisten toimivien ratkaisujen sijasta
ellauri028.html on line 299: brikoleerata joutaville roboteille valkoisia käsineitä ja nivelkäsiä.
ellauri028.html on line 336: The Pittsburgh Post-Gazette of December 4, 1939, reported that the historical inspiration for the song had been a young Frenchwoman named Marie Lecoq (later Marie Marceau), who worked as a waitress at the Café de la Paix in Armentières at the time of the war. Despite the obscenity of many popular versions of the song, it was reportedly quite clean in its original form.
ellauri028.html on line 551: Tääkin todistaa jotakin. Uusi testamentti on globalisaation evankeliumi, sillä saadaan alkuasukkaille housut jalkaan ja halu omistaa myös t-paita, lenkkarit, lippis ja televisio. Koko raamattu on ammattilaisille, kun ilmainen näyte on nielaistu ja hinnoista, veroista ja tulleista on sovittu.
ellauri028.html on line 694:
Globaali yrittäjä!
ellauri029.html on line 213: Globaali yrittäjyys (202)
ellauri029.html on line 259: Työntekijöiden vapaata tahtoa ei kiinalaisessa tehtaassa juuri suosittu, vaan toiminta tehtaassa vaikutti vahvasti aivopesutoiminnalta. Työntekijöille uskoteltiin, että elämä on työtä ja ihminen ei tarvitse muuta kuin työtä. Kiinalaiset työntekijät vaikuttivat näin länsimaalaisen silmään tuotantoroboteilta, joilla ei ollut tunteita tai omaa tahtoa. Jokainen työntekijä kiinalaisessa tehtaassa vaikutti kuitenkin täysin tyytyväiseltä tilanteeseensa. Onko tämä oikeasti tyytyväisyyttä vai tehokkaan aivopesun ansiota?
ellauri029.html on line 350: Eski Saarinen, positiivisuuden kolmastoista apostoli, kehaista retostelee ohimennen pankkinobelisti Kahnemannia. On siis syytä kaivella sitä vähäsen, se on välittömästi suspekti.
ellauri029.html on line 437: In internet, nobody knows you are a dog.
Kuplat kannattaa niille jotka tekee kuplia.
ellauri029.html on line 486: Ja yhä pöntöt inttävät. Pönttöys on sisäänrakennettu termiittiapinaan, ei se siitä pääse enempää kuin E.Saarinen leobardintäplistään.
ellauri029.html on line 652: Mieluummiin siis taistelua elämästä ja kuolemasta, kuin haistelua ja maistelua ikävästä elämästä ja vielä tylsemmästä kuolemasta vanhuuteen tai ylipainoon. Tuula-Leena Varixen kirja obeesista vaimosta jäi laatikkoon, vaikka sekin takakannen mukaan menehtyi kirjan aikana. Mieluummin poliiseja ja rosvoja kuin pyhimyxiä ja vanhoja kunnon Patteja. Mieluummin sairaala- kuin perhe-elämää, vaikka molemmissa tulee joskus vainaita.
ellauri030.html on line 107: Vanha Cato oli sotamiehenä kuulun Fabius Cunctatorin tiimissä. Siinä mies Caton mieleen, ja minun myös. Vitkastelu on kivaa. Scipiosta se ei tykännyt, kun se oli tuhlari. Cato muistutti Roope Ankkaa nuorena. Otti talteen narunpätkätkin. Cato sai läpi jotain lakeja jotka rajotti roomalaisten rankaisemista. Mitähän se ois sanonut Catilinan keissistä? Cato oli ennen kaikkea moraalinvartija, hemmetin sensori. Rajoituxia ja lisää rajoituxia persuille, pätäkkää ja lisää pätäkkää mamuilta. Ja xenofobi, hoki sitä "ceterum censeo" meemiä puunien pään menoxi. Ja menihän se pää lopulta. Suolaa vaan siroteltiin tuhkille. Niinkuin Dresdenissä, Afganistanissa, ja Irakissa nyttemmin.
ellauri030.html on line 274: Haec enim ipsa sunt honorabilia quae videntur levia atque communia, salutari, adpeti, decedi, adsurgi, deduci, reduci, consuli; quae et apud nos et in aliis civitatibus, ut quaeque optime morata est, ita diligentissime observantur. Lysandrum Lacedaemonium, cuius modo feci mentionem, dicere aiunt solitum Lacedaemonem esse honestissimum domicilium senectutis: nusquam enim tantum tribuitur aetati, nusquam est senectus honoratior. Quin etiam memoriae proditum est, cum Athenis ludis quidam in theatrum grandis natu venisset, magno consessu locum nusquam ei datum a suis civibus; cum autem ad Lacedaemonios accessisset, qui legati cum essent, certo in loco consederant, consurrexisse omnes illi dicuntur et senem sessum recepisse.
ellauri030.html on line 331: Erityisesti Epiktetos on vaikuttanut ja vaikuttaa vieläkin moraalisen puhtauden hyväksi. Puhtausintoilijat on anaalisobsessiivisia, kazo vaikka Elisabeth Rehniä tai Marie Kondoa. Tekevät kuolinsiivouxia. (tähän sitaatti Make Eskeliseltä!)
ellauri030.html on line 437: Mitä vittua? Mitä tekemistä noilla asioilla on keskenään? Sitä kiireempihän on ajatella alhaisia ajatuxia ja haluta kaikkea kohtuuttomasti, jos kuolema on luvassa. Niinkuin Calvinin ja Hobbesin kesäloma, josta on jo 1 päivä puolessa.
ellauri030.html on line 535: Elukatkin voi ymmärtää, mut vaan nää sapajut osaa järkeillä. Parasta järkeilyä on pessimismi. Maailma on läpeensä paha, siis se ei ole kunnossa, niinkun pitäisi (maailmantahdon, siis mun, mielestä ainaskin). Huonompaa maailma ei vois ollakaan. (Voltairen Candidessa oltiin just vastakkaista mieltä, inhottavia optimisteja.) Se on aivan hel-vetin huono. Surkea. Maailma on Jammertal, täynnä kärsimystä. Puudeli kakkaa sohvalle ja kusee jalalle. Onni on vain kuvitelmaa, lysti negatiivista. Schopenhauer on pahempi nyrpistelijä kuin saxalainen autobaanaa hurjasteleva unbefriedigte Frau. Elämä heiluu kuin pendeli tuskan ja ikävystymisen väliä. Tik-tusskaa, tak-tyyylsää. Pahinta on se et aina panettaa. Schopenhauer saisi täydet pisteet pessimismitestistä. Mihkäs se kuoli? Keuhkotulehduxeen. Ei siis sydixeen, vastoin Pänkäläisen ennustuxia.
ellauri030.html on line 547: Berliinissä ollessaan Schopenhauer haastettiin oikeuteen. Haastajana oli ompelijatar nimeltä Caroline Marquet. Melua vihannut Schopenhauer oli työntänyt ikkunansa alla kovaa lörpötelleen naisen alas portailta. Nainen oli loukkaantunut niin pahasti, että Schopenhauer määrättiin maksamaan tälle kuukausittain 15 taaleria rahallista korvausta. Kun nainen 20 vuotta myöhemmin kuoli, Schopenhauer kirjoitti päiväkirjaansa latinaksi ”obit anus, abit onus” (nainen kuoli, kärsimys loppui). Sillonko se osti sen huoneiston?
ellauri030.html on line 577: Schopenhauerin estetiikan Arska nakkas tienoheen rutosti. Se onkin tosi hienostelevaa, porvarillista, Arska on talonpoikainen, agraarihenkisenä tykkää salvoxista ja rukinlavoista. Niistä tykkäs Pirkkokin, ja Calle mukana. Mut hieno taide ei oo vaan kaunista vaan ylevää. Ylentää kauppiaanpojan ylempiin sfääreihin. Taiteet paremmusjärjestyxeen musiikki ja etenkin huilunsoitto ylinnä. Taiteilijanero puuppaa huilulla, puudeli kuuntelee ja ulisee. Tälläsestä tuubasta tykkäs mm. Viivi ja Wagner, Schönberg, Nietzsche sekä symbolistit Baudelaire, Verlaine, Mallarmé, etc etc. Varmaan snobi Paul Bourget myäs. Olix Schopenhauerilla yhtään vizejä? Aika huumorittomalta se vaikuttaa. No oli sillä muutama esimerkkinä, kts sen huumorin filosofiaa.
ellauri030.html on line 704: Platon (tylsimys), Hobbes (hölmö) tai Kant (kuivelo) on siitä vaan jokunen
ellauri030.html on line 730: Protestanttishenkiset filosofit Hobbes ja Descartes oli samoilla linjoilla. Leviathanissa (1651) todetaan et sapajut on luonnostaan kilpailuhenkisiä ja tarkkoja huomaamaan kuka on joholla. Joholla olevat on iloisia ja nauravat tappiolle jääville.
ellauri030.html on line 732: Sudden glory, is the passion which makes those grimaces called laughter; and is caused either by some sudden act of their own, that pleases them; or by the apprehension of some deformed thing in another, by comparison whereof they suddenly applaud themselves. And it is incident most to them, that are conscious of the fewest abilities in themselves; who are forced to keep themselves in their own favor by observing the imperfections of other men. And therefore much laughter at the defects of others, is a sign of pusillanimity. For of great minds, one of the proper works is, to help and free others from scorn; and to compare themselves only with the most able.
ellauri030.html on line 749: Koomisessa helpotus on usein älyllistä, helpottaa kun ymmärtää mikä on kaskun kärkenä. Esim runossa "The Antiquity of Microbes":
ellauri030.html on line 756: Huumorissa purkautuu joku tunne jota ei tarvizekaan tuntea, kuten vaikka pelästys tai sääli. Freudia nauratti se kun Mark Twainin kaskussa joku lensi ilmaan dynamiittipaukussa ja sitä laskutettiin alas tullessa poissaolosta työpaikalta. Tää on sama kuin tossa säästetyn postimerkin tapauxessa. Ei tarvizekaan sääliä, kun tää ei ole tosista. No ei toikaan vizi nyt ihan ollut Nobel tasoa, hehe, niinkun Eski sanoisi, dynamiittia.
ellauri030.html on line 806: Joskus 1900-luvulla vasta porukalle alkoi valjeta (hämärästi vielä tosin), että sopimaton naurattaa. Ei mikä tahansa epäsuhta, vaan sellainen, johon liitty joku autoritaarisempi tunneviritys. Jos normi on liian pyhä, reaktio voi olla muukin kuin nauru, esim. pelko, sääli, pahexuminen tai inho. Beattie huomautti tästä 1779. Esim Oidipuxessa on ihan vitusti dramaattista ironiaa, muttei sille sovi nauraa. (Vaikka onhan se oikeasti aika naurettava näytelmä, tehdään turhan suurta numeroa insestistä.) Mua kyllä häirizee tässä Stanfordin sepustuxessa se, et ei kunnolla problematisoida sitä onx nää eri teoriat edes toisensa poissulkevia.
ellauri030.html on line 824: Avoid obscurity of expression.
ellauri030.html on line 921: For example, characters in a working-class family may banter back and forth about paying bills or finding a more respected or higher-paying job. The delivery of dialog may come across as funny for an audience who believes the humor comes from the antagonistic relationship between the two characters. But the real hostile nature of the joke involves class and economic issues that are otherwise not funny.
ellauri030.html on line 1009: Hobbes ym. 1600-luvun hemmot selittää kaiken mekaniikalla, koska se oli sen ajan uusi kova juttu. Sope on väliinputoaja, se selittelee kaiken tahdolla. Sopen Wille on jonkinlaista innere Drangia. Sille selvii vasta vanhana galvanismi ja sähkön osuus ruumiin liikuttajana. (Eikä sillonkaan kunnolla.) Ehkä se sen tahto oiskin ollut sähköä, jos se olis syntynyt sähkölamppuaikana.
ellauri031.html on line 24: Yrhätta tarkoittaa rasavilli, (tytöistä) tuulihattu, pyryharakka. Karlarna [karana] Drakassa ei tietystikään ollu yrhättor, vaan yrbollar. Sekobolzeja. Kuvan pyryharakalta pilkistää mirri mekon alta.
ellauri031.html on line 43: Senare började han önska att han skulle kunna fråga myrorna många andra frågor, såsom "tycker du om ditt jobb? Är du en slav? Är du lycklig?" Det märkvärdiga var att han inte kunde ställa dessa frågor. För att ställa dem borde han ha översatt dem på myrspråket - men han märkte med en känsla av hjälplöshet att det inte fanns ord för de saker som han ville säga. Det fanns inga ord för lycka, för frihet, för tyckande, inte heller ord för deras motsatser. Han kände sig som en stum man som försöker skrika "elden är lös!" Det närmaste han kunde komma till rätt eller fel var at säga "snärtigt" eller "fittigt". Snart märkte han att dessa två var de enda två adjektiv i språket som täckte alla värdefrågorna.
ellauri031.html on line 48: Zwilgmeyer (l. Zwilchmeyer) betyder byxmakare på lågtyska. Det oaktat är Dikke tvättäkta norska, och xenofob. Boken börjar med en långtråkig skildring hur norska barn mobbar fattiga zigenare. Yrhättan här (hon har ännu inget annat namn) är borgmästarens långbenta flicka, den värsta bråkmakaren. De små rasisterna skriker något förnedrande till zigenarna och springer bort. Dom gömmer sig hos en homofil som broderar i smyg, liksom den ena gubben i Tove Janssons muminserier, och slipper undan. Som tack blir zigenarna utvisade ur stan. Bra läxa för små norrbarn at lära sig just nu. Gör så här med immigranterna, det blir kul.
ellauri031.html on line 114: Morbror Max och tant Betty föreslår att adoptera Y som eget barn. Nej i helvete! ropar Inger-Johanne med detsamma, jag vill hem! Y tror att dom vill kidnappa henne, och försöker fly. Lyckligtvis nappar morbror Max killingen förrän hon försvinner igen. Är det alltid små autistiska narsister som hittar på att rymma hemifrån? Kalle (den med Hobbe) gör också så.
ellauri031.html on line 142: Men vi behöver inte fortsätta om myrorna i alltför mycken detalj - det är inget trevligt ämne. Det räcker att säga att pojken fortsatte at leva bland dem och observerade dem för att förstå dem, men kunde inte ställa frågor. Det var inte enbart det att deras språk inte hade de ord som intresserar mänskor - så att det skulle ha varit omöjligt att fråga av dem om de trodde i livet, friheten och efterträvandet av lycka - utan det var farligt att fråga någonting alls. En fråga var ett tecken för vansinne för dem. Deras liv var inte ifrågasatt - det var beordrat. Han ålade från nästet till matsalen och tillbaka igen, förkunnade att sången 'lällällää' var snärtig, öppnade munnen for att hälsa kaptenen och försökte förstå så bra han kunde.
ellauri031.html on line 149: Vad är uniformens funktion? Ytligt, den är ett igenkänningsmärke. I krigssituation vet man vem är vän och fiende. Också är det mer ekonomiskt at klä alla på samma sätt. Men det finns ett annat syfte, som går djupare. Genom uniformen är det meningen att jämna ut allt det individuella i en person. En beväring får inte tänka att han är någonting unikt. Han är som alla andra. Den sanningen upprepas jämnt av stampersonalen. Ingen får extra behandling. Där är arméns demokrati. Eller bättre sagt, ingen får extra behandling för att vara ens den individ som han är. Nog finns det privilegierade klasser, men det är klasser, inte individer. Klasserna är märkta på uniformen med gradbeteckningarna. Underbefälet har längre fritid än manskapen. Aspiranterna och sergeanterna äter skilt, stampersonalen vid dukade bord. Det här jämlikheten sett nedifrån. Alla vänner och fiender är likställda. Man skall känna sammanhålling med de som bär samma uniform och vara beredd att döda dem som har olik uniform, oberoende av hurudan människa bor i uniformen. Annars skulle det vara omöjligt att göra det ena eller det andra.
ellauri031.html on line 159: Dessa iakttagelser - det begränsade totalordförrådet och det ökande antalet lån från finskan - vittnar om hur svårt det är att upprätthålla en självständig språkform i en så liten sammanslutning som det enda svenskatalande truppförbandet i landet. Också den omständigheten att en icke obetydlig del av beväringarna numera är tvåspråkiga eller tom helt och hållet finskspråkiga har sin verkan.
ellauri031.html on line 217: Aika samanlainen asenne valtioihin on globalisaation ja vapaakauppasopimusten aikana ylikansallisilla firmoilla. Ne on maailmankansalaisia, valtakuntia kansakuntien ylä- ja ulkopuolella. Johtajina rahamussoliineja.
ellauri031.html on line 288: Salainen poliisilaitos on vahvasti kehittynyt ja sen agentteja on kaikkialla. Ovenvartijoilla on velvollisuus säännöllisesti tiedottaa ihmisten tulemisista ja menemisistä. Mutta kaikki tapahtuu kaikessa hiljaisuudessa ja valvontalaitos on erinomaisen taitavasti organisoitu, ei sitä paljon huomaa arkielämässä. Joskus saattaa joutua todistamaan pikku välikohtauxia julkisuudessa. Sillä luonnoltaan huolettomana italialaisen on vaikea seurata kaikkia niitä monia määräyxiä joilla hallitus koettaa kasvattaa kansaa kuriin ja järjestyxeen. Kansalaisen on opittava pysyttelemään vasemmalla jalkakäytävällä, noudattaa siisteyttä ja järjestystä raitiovaunuissa ja autobusseissa, junissa jne. Vähitellen alkavat italialaiset oppia että määräyxet ovat noudattamista varten, vaikka monet napisevatkin "preussilaisuudesta". Sama meininki on nyt Kiinassa. Nekin on luonnostaan aika homssuja.
ellauri031.html on line 462: Under 1700-talet gjordes flera misslyckade försök att bygga färdigt slussarna. 1753 var Polhems slussled klar, 1754 var Ekeblads sluss klar och invigdes av kung Adolf Fredrik. Den sista slussen blev färdigsprängd 1755 men på grund av tekniska problem kom den aldrig i bruk.
ellauri031.html on line 664: Mutta postilähetys on laupias, lähetetään siis 55K ristisidettä! Kaarlolla oli 300 kristityn osoite. Eipä paljon. Oikutteleva vw pienoisbussi tulee Saxasta miniän mukana. Nikodemuskristitty publikaani auttaa väärentämään paperit. Kaarlo ajeleeb sillä 400K km pitkin Israelin pölyisiä teitä. Moottorikin vaihdetaan kuin meidän mannepirssitä ja Wokun räyhämobiilista.
ellauri031.html on line 674: Meneekö se niinkuin luvussa Callesta ja Hobbesta on kuvattu. Kyse on varainsiirrosta tuonpuoleiseen veroparatiisiin. Jotkut pohatat on keränneet murheenlaaxossa niin paljon massia, että pelätessään haudantakaisia veroseuraamuxia ne siirtää luottoa pilvitileille. Mukanaanhan sitä ei voi viedä muuten kuin just tällä tavalla. Tää luotto on sikälikin hyvä sijoitus, et ilmainen näyte koukuttaa oman tiimin puolelle uusia asiakkuuxia, jotka sitten ostaa meikäläisiltä kovalla rahalla kovempia huumeita: postilloja, pääsiäismunia, joululahjoja ja Oral B hammasharjoja.
ellauri031.html on line 821: Höpsismin eri konsteja on mun paasausten kuluessa tullut vastaan monia, vaikken ole kaikista tehnyt numeroa. Joskus käytetään feikki tieteellistä menettelyä jonka yhteys päätettävään asiaan on suunnilleen yhtä satunnainen kuin rahan tai nopan heitto. Ciceron aikana kazottiin linnun sisälmyxiä (auspicium, suotuisa onkin englannixi auspicious), tai heitettiin jonkun pikkueläimen sopivia luita. Niillekin oli joku nimi jonka olen taas unohtanut. Sit on kiinalaiset oraakkelikilpikonnankuoret eli scrapulimantia, saamelaisten arpaluut, sammakkoprofessorit, pilvet, ouijalaudat, kiromantia, Pythagoraan numerologia, katukivien reunat, kissat, tikapuut, voi vizi eihän näistä tule mitään loppua. Noin tsygologisesti nää on pakko-oireita: on pakko menetellä niin tai noin, pakko kävellä näin, niinkuin se nummelalainen pedofiili lauloi. Uskovaisuuden indikaatioita on optimismi, obsessio ja paranoia, kontraindikaatioita autismi ja pessimismi.
ellauri031.html on line 827: Mieleenjäävä tarina obsessiivisesta ennusmerkkiuskovaisesta on Italo Calvinon Solmiutuvien linjojen verkossa. Siinä pakko-oireinen vieraileva professori, joka on erehtynyt tafsaamaan isäntäyliopiston viehättävää Marjorie Stubbsia, on juoxulenkillä jossain yliopiston lähikortteleissa. Se on koko ajan kuulevinaan puhelimen soivan (tää on siis lankapuhelinten aikaa, Jos talviyönä matkamies ilmestyi ´79) ja siitä tuntuu aina että se puhelu on tarkoitettu sille. Tarpeexi monta kertaa skizoiltuaan se vihdoin vastaa autiotalon ikkunalla olevaan puhelimeen, josta ääni sanoo: Marjorie on sidottuna erään toisen talon yläkerrassa, talossa on pommi, olisi hyvä jos vapauttaisit hänet. Hemmo juoxee takaisin yliopistolle ja kysyy tytöiltä (tytöt kazovat sitä ironisesti, sitä se ei voi sietää...) onko Marjorietä näkynyt. Ei ole näkynyt 2 päivään, vastaa Lorna. Hemmo alkaa juosta simona siihen toisen talon osoitteeseen, lopulta henkihieverissä pääsee perille, yläkerrassa on Marjorie Stubbs sidottuna ja suukapuloituna. Hemmo irrottaa suukapulan ja Marjorie kazoo sitä halvexuvasti: Sinä olet sika, hän sanoo heebolle.
ellauri032.html on line 25: Onko Kalle kalvinisti ja Hobbe hobitti? Onko Lassin isä Calle? onko Larska Lassi vaiko Leevi? Oliko isi yliminä, Lassi minä, ja Leevi se? Sepä se, otapa siitä selvää. Tuumasta toimeen.
ellauri032.html on line 39: Jean Calvin (alkujaan Cauvin; 10. heinäkuuta 1509 Noyon – 27. toukokuuta 1564 Geneve) oli ranskalaissyntyinen uskonpuhdistaja. Hän jatkoi Ulrich Zwinglin ] (1 January 1484 – 11 October 1531) reformoidun kirkon opillista perinnettä. Hän perusti kalvinismin, yhden protestanttisen kristinuskon oppisuunnista.
ellauri032.html on line 41: Ulrich oli Huldrich, huldigen sie den Herren. Singen, beten, loben den Herrn. Zwingli tarkottaa pikku pakkoa. Hyvä nimi. Peukutti painovirheettömyyttä, valtionkirkkoa, lapsikastetta, herrakomentoa. Dissas paavia, messua, paastoa, kymmenyxiä.
ellauri032.html on line 58: Ei ihme että protestantismi eli vastaanhankaus on schweiziläinen kexintö. Niinkuin Toblerone, pankit, kronometrit ja talojen kuuraaminen ulkopuolelta. Kun Jyränkö tuli Lontooseen kouliintumaan juutalaisten junan lähettäjäxi, se joutui naisten töihin keittiöön perunoita kuorimaan. Muttei mennyt kauan, kun sen schweiziläinen kolleega tilas Schweizistä perunankuorintakoneen. Pian kone teki naisten työt miesten puolesta. Perunan kuorinta ja brassivahaus, aikaa kaxi tuntia. Ei hätää kun on isän antamat kalut. Sujuu wikkelään kuin mainoxessa Wesku Ploirilla, kun on näitä Häntiä ja kassit riittoisaa Hairya. Räjäyttää nahat pois kieposta.
ellauri032.html on line 159: Dieu d’Abraham, Dieu d’Isaac, Dieu de Jacob,
ellauri032.html on line 254: Taas Eliot koittaa rationalisoida selvää huttua. Kyllä Paskalin pesulakuitistakin ilmenee, että kun usko tulee tilalle, järki sanoo adjöö eikä au revoir. Sää pystyt vaikka mahdottomaan, usko sydäntäs vaan! Koko naamarin täydeltä tulee höttöä, kun persoonallisuus on pelissä. Mitä Eliotkin luuli tietävänsä tieteestä, humanistipohjalta. Kääntymisen jälkeen Tomppa kirjoitti kesympiä runoja, joista sen ateistifänit ei enää tykänneet. Nobel tuli Neljästä kvartetista 2. maailmansodan jälkeen 1948. Siinäkin on jotain kristillistä mystiikkaa.
ellauri032.html on line 263: obbes-6.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri032.html on line 265: obbes.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri032.html on line 268: Hobbes
ellauri032.html on line 270: Thomas Hobbes on ehkä hieman kesymmän näköinen (nojaa, ei sittenkään) kuin Calvin, mikä kyllä sopis Lassi-ja Leevisarjixiin: Leevi on ystävällisemmän näköinen, ja pörröinen, ei angstaa yhtä paljon, ja vetää kotiinpäin selkeästi ovelammin - tää nazaa todellakin hyvin.
ellauri032.html on line 272: Thomas Hobbes (5. huhtikuuta 1588 Westport, Wiltshire – 4. joulukuuta 1679 Hardwick Hall, Derbyshire) oli englantilainen filosofi. Hänet tunnetaan ennen kaikkea poliittisesta filosofiastaan, mutta hän kirjoitti myös historiasta, geometriasta, etiikasta ja yleisestä filosofiasta. Enimmäxeen paaaaaaskaa.
ellauri032.html on line 274: Hobbesin tunnetuin teos on Leviathan, jossa hän kehittää teorian valistuneesta diktaattorista, jolle kansalaiset luovuttavat vapauttaan saadakseen valtion suojeluksen. Hobbesin mukaan suvereenin, joka voi olla kuningas tai sen känsänvaltainen elin, ja sen hallitseman väkivaltakoneiston tehtävänä on ehkäistä luonnontilassa vallitseva ”kaikkien sota kaikkia vastaan” ja mahdollistaa järkiperäinen edistys.
ellauri032.html on line 276: No toihan on tuskin mikään teoria, noinhan se tuppaa menemään, mutta Hobbes oli mulkero kerta tollanen porvarillinen muka edistys heikompien kustannuxella oli sen mielestä hyvä asia. Niinhän se yx jutku antropologikin sanoi, se sama joka selitti paleoliittisestä dieetistä ja suolan käytöstä, niin Jared Diamond siis. Jossain Borneollako se oli, en muista, oli verikosto päällä koko ajan, piti pelätä, ei voinut poiketa polulta mezään ettei vihulainen yllätä. Ei ollut helppoa.
ellauri032.html on line 284: Hobbes oli keskosena syntynyt tappelusta karkuunjuosseen juopon kirkkoherran poika Wiltshirestä. Kirkkoherra nukkui kirkonpalveluxessa ja heräs kesken kaiken vaan sanomaan: "ruutu on valttia". Tomppa joutui hanskanompelijasedän hoidokixi, oli hikipinko koulussa, ja noin vuonna 1603 se lähetettiin Oxfordiin Magdalen Halliin (Hertford College). Valmistui hitaasti, "vasta" 20-vuotiaana. Se oli koko ajan saman suvun kotiopettajana. Kävi vaihdossa kaverinsa kanssa, käänsi Thukydidestä js muita grekuja, sai siitä päähänsä päättömiä ajatuxia demokratiasta ja yhteiskunnasta.
ellauri032.html on line 286: Hobbes alkoi filosofeerata aika vanhana, Kaarlo Syvännön ikäisenä. Vanhaxi se elikin, yli ysärixi. Sen matematiikan ja fysiikan prujauxet oli ihan paaaaaaaskaa. Elementa Philosophica teoxessa se rakensi ihan elämäntyönä jotain maailman mallia, sen kirjoittamiseen meni yli 20v. Myöhemmin se sekaantui myös politiikkaan ja uskontoon ikävin seurauxin. Descartesia se koitti vähän arvostella razastaaxeen sen maineella, Descartes oli hyvin nihkeä, herrat riitaantuivat iäxi. Englannin vallankumouxeen se sekaantui kuningasmielisten puolella, joutui maanpakoon ja kirjoitti Leviathanin. Leviathan oli se merihirviö Jobin kirjassa jolla oli niin iso kikkeli että sen verisuonet oli kuin juurakot.
ellauri032.html on line 288: Hobbesin mukaan valtio voitiin nähdä suurena keinotekoisena hirviönä, Leviatanina, joka koostui ihmisistä, ja jonka synty voitiin jäljittää inhimillisten tarpeiden aiheuttamiin paineisiin ja hajoaminen inhimillisten intohimojen aiheuttamiin yhteiskunnallisiin ristiriitoihin. Teos päättyi johtopäätöksiin suorana vastauksena sodalle, joka oli herättänyt kysymyksen alamaisten oikeudesta vaihtaa kuuliaisuuden kohdetta, kun hallitsija on lopullisesti menettänyt voimansa suojella heitä. Samalla Hobbes soi itselleen tilaisuuden osallistua uskonnollisten oppien arvosteluun.
ellauri032.html on line 290: Leviathan ilmestyi lopulta vuoden 1651 puolessa välissä. Teoksen kannessa oli tunnettu kaiverrus kruunatusta hirviöstä, jonka ruumis koostui pienistä ihmishahmoista, ja jolla oli toisessa kädessään miekka ja toisessa piispansauva. Siinä oli siis vittuilua myös kirkosta. Lassin ja Leevin keskinäiset rökityxet alkaa selittyä. Tätä pitää selittää vielä tarkemmin, mutta Hobbes oli niin epäuskonnollinen kuin tona huippuunsa trimmattujen hihhulien aikana oli ylipäänsä mahdollista. Ei tässä ollut kysymys uskonnosta, tää oli luokkataistelua uskonnon nimellä. Kauppiasluokka nosti rumaa melaansa kuin Leviathan merestä. Hobbes näytti valaan melan paljaana, mistä suivaantuneina kaikki osapuolet hyökkäs Hobben kimppuun kuin parvi herhiläisiä.
ellauri032.html on line 292: Teoksella oli välitön vaikutus. Pian Hobbes oli sekä ylistetympi että halvennetumpi kuin yksikään aikansa ajattelija. Teoksen julkaisemisen ensimmäinen vaikutus oli kuitenkin se, että hänen suhteensa kuningasmielisiin katkesi, minkä johdosta hän joutui kääntymään Englannin vallankumoushallinnon puoleen saadakseen turvaa. Hobbesin viholliset olisivat hyvin voineet surmata hänet – hänen teoksensa maallinen henki suututti sekä anglikaaneja että ranskalaisia katolilaisia. Hobbes pakeni kotimaahansa ja saapui Lontooseen talvella 1651. Hän alistui valtioneuvoston alamaisuuteen ja hänen sallittiin vetäytyä yksityisyyteen Fetter Lanelle.
ellauri032.html on line 294: Piispa John Bramhall, vannoutunut arminianismin kannattaja (ks yllä), julkaisi pienen tutkielman Of Liberty and Necessity joka oli osoitettu Hobbesille. Bramhall oli tavannut Hobbesin aiemmin ja väitellyt tämän kanssa, ja kirjoitti jälkeenpäin näkemyksensä Hobbesin vastattavaksi. Hobbes vastasi, mutta ei julkaistavaksi. Eräs ranskalainen tuttava kuitenkin julkaisi vastauksen. Bramhall julkaisi vuonna 1655 vastaiskuna kaiken kirjeenvaihdon heidän välillään nimellä A Defence of the True Liberty of Human Actions from Antecedent or Extrinsic Necessity. Vuonna 1656 Hobbesilla oli puolestaan valmiina teos Questions concerning Liberty, Necessity and Chance, jolla hän vastasi piispalle voimallisesti. Hobbesin vastaukset olivat merkittäviä vapaan tahdon ongelman historiassa mahdollisesti ensimmäisinä selkeän psykologisen determinismin esityksinä. Piispa vastasi syytöksiin vuonna 1658 teoksella Castigations of Mr Hobbes´s Animadversions, johon oli liitetty laaja liite nimellä The Catching of Leviathan the Great Whale. Hobbes ei koskaan vastannut tähän teokseen.
ellauri032.html on line 296: Auta armias. Bramhallin kanssa käytyjen kiistojen lisäksi Hobbes osallistui toiseen väittelyyn julkaistuaan teoksensa De Corpore vuonna 1655. Matemaatikkoja kuten Wallisia vastaan Hobbes hävisi kädet selän takana. Sen prujauxet oli huonosti perusteltuja ja kiistanalaisia, siis yxinkertaisesti ihan täyttä paaaaskaa.
ellauri032.html on line 298: Poliittisesti hobbismista tuli suosittua rotinkaispiireissä, kun siinä mätkittiin papistoa ja muita herroja. Kunkku suojeli Hobbesia papiston raivolta. Parlamentin alahuone esitteli vuonna 1666 ohjelman ateismia ja maallistumista vastaan. 17. lokakuuta annetiin määräys, jonka mukaan ohjelmaa valvovalle komitealle tuli antaa valtuudet saada tietoa koskien sellaisia kirjoja jotka olivat taipuvaisia ateismiin, jumalanpilkkaan ja maallisuuteen – – erityisesti koskien – – herra Hobbesin kirjaa, jota kutsutaan nimellä Leviathan.
ellauri032.html on line 300: Hobbes kauhistui harhaoppisen leimasta ja koitti pyristellä syytteistä. Määräys kielsi Hobbesta enää koskaan julkaisemasta teoksia jotka käsittelisivät inhimillistä eli huonoa käytöstä. Vuoden 1668 painos hänen teoksestaan painettiin Amsterdamissa, koska hän ei saanut sensoreilta lupaa sen julkaisemiseen Englannissa. Muut teokset julkaistiin vasta hänen kuolemansa jälkeen.
ellauri032.html on line 302: Hobbesin viimeiset teokset olivat luonteeltaan hyvin erilaisia. Näihin kuuluivat latinankielinen omaelämäkerta Thomae Hobbesii vita vuonna 1672, Odysseian neljän kirjan käännös englanninkieliselle runomitalle vuonna 1673, ja Iliaan että Odysseian täydelliset käännökset vuonna 1675. Tämmöisiä mäkin voisin prujata eläkkeellä. Hetkinen, niitähän mä tässä prujaankin jo. Ja oon jo eläkkeellä vittu.
ellauri032.html on line 304: Hobbes kuoli 92-vuotiaana lokakuussa 1679 virtsarakon sairauteen joka johti halvaantumiseen. Hänet haudattiin Ault Hucknallin kirkkomaalle Derbyshireen.
ellauri032.html on line 306: Hobbes on vaikuttanut suuresti uuden ajan yhteiskuntafilosofiaan. Häntä pidetään Niccolò Machiavellin ohella nykyaikaisen politiikan tutkimuksen perustajana. Etenkin klassiset utilitaristit ja oikeuspositivistit pitivät Hobbesia edelläkävijänään. Eli se on tän vitun peliteoreettisen taloustieteen suursyyllisiä.
ellauri032.html on line 308: Hobbesin rakennelmassa politiikka onkin peräisin yksilön valinnoista. Näkemys, jonka mukaan yhteiskunnallinen valta kasvaa tietynlaisista yksilöistä - eikä esimerkiksi toisin päin - muodostaa tärkeän ydinjuonteen liberalismissa.
ellauri032.html on line 310: Apinajärki on Hobbesin mukaan lähinnä seurauksia laskeva kone. Yksilöiden rationaalinen laskelmointi johtaa väkivaltaan. Oman edun turvaaminen voimalla on päätelmä, johon jokainen järkevä apina muka tulee, ellei apinoita valvo luja poliittinen valta eli silverbäkit.
ellauri032.html on line 312: Historian ja todellisten apinoiden näkökulmasta tää on helppo osoittaa nojatuolifilosofin hurjasteluksi. Historiasta ei löydy yhteisöistä ja valtasuhteista irrallisia yksilöitä tekemässä sopimuksia. Eniten hobbesin kuvaamaa apinanluontoa muistuttavat ne apinat, jotka on kouluttamalla koulutettu sellaisiksi, kuten kansantaloustieteen opiskelijat.
ellauri032.html on line 314: Hobbesin apinakuva on epärealistisuudestaan huolimatta liberaalin ajattelun kulmakivi. se ilmenee ekonomistien kannanotoissa, katastrofielokuvissa ja närkästyneissä kolumneissa, joiden mukaan meidän täytyy tehdä yhä enemmän työtä ja alistua vallalle, jottemme vajoaisi takaisin luonnon tilan sekasortoon. tässä ajattelussa apinuuden perusluonne johtaa sotimiseen ja epäsosiaalisuuteen - paitsi jos yksilöt muodostavat kansan, joka alistuu "järkevälle" auktoriteetille.
ellauri032.html on line 318: Porvarillisessa ajattelussa yhteiskuntasopimus on jatkuvasti vaarassa murentua ja kaatua kaaokseen, joka hajottaisi kansan takaisin epämääräiseksi rahvaaksi. Alistuminen ja työssä raataminen nähdään aina parempana kuin pelätty vajoaminen kuviteltuun luonnontilaan. Hobbesin näkemyksen ytimessä ovat siis omia etujaan ajavat yksilöt, ja hänen politiikkansa päämääränä on hengen, omaisuuden, lain ja järjestyksen eli "turvallisuuden" takaaminen.
ellauri032.html on line 321: Mitä Hobbe todella sanoi?
ellauri032.html on line 323: Kazotaanpa nyt Gutenbergistä tosin valikoivasti mutta alkulähteiltä mitä Hobbe sanoi Leviathanissa. Oikeutta ei tehdä, koska se on vahvemman oikeus, ja vahvempi olen mä, kerta Hobbes on jo vainaja.
ellauri032.html on line 325: Hobbe avaa trendikkäästi robotiikalla ja tekoälyllä. Kerta elämä on izetoimista ruumiin liikettä, ex voida sanoa et izetoimivat automaatit on eläviä? Ja toiseen suuntaan mennessä, ex tää koko termiittipesä ole oikeastaan iso eläin, hirmuinen Leviathan, jossa johtoporras on sieluna, virkamiehet niveliä, palkinnot ja rangaistuxet jänteitä ja hermoja, omaisuus ruumista, kyldyyripellet muistia, lait tahtoa, sopu terveyttä, kapina sairautta, sota kuolema. Kukahan on se hirmu suuri juurakkosuoninen siitin? Vapaaehtoisia?
ellauri032.html on line 327: Hobbe sanoo aivan oikein että apinoiden passiot on aina samoja, vaikka niiden kohteet riippuu jossain määrin ympäristöstä. Tää on taas se Herbert Simon idea. Se on vähän turhan innostunut liikkeistä, vaan mistäpä se tietäisikään vielä muista energian muodoista. Mutta tarkoitus on oikeensuuntainen, eli redusoida aistit yhteen syyhyn, liikkeeseen, jonka jatkumista kallon sisällä on sitten muukin sielunelämä, liikkeelle lähteneen heilurin vellomista aivovellissä.
ellauri032.html on line 329: Vielä parempaa: se selittää samalla mekaanisella tavalla unet ja niihin liittyvät uskontohörhöjen mystilliset hörhöilyt. (Tästä hörhöt ei takuulla kyllä innostuneet.) Hobbes vinoilee että varsinkin ritariromaanien lukijoista tulee hulluja kuin Don Leukava. Uskonnollisia traktaatteja ei se varovaisuussyistä tässä mainize, vaikka haukkuu kyllä noitia ja muita sarlataaneja, jotka tekee taikoja henkimaailman nimissä. Samanlainen erehdys on väittää, että pahat unet tulee perkeleeltä ja hyvät taivaan isältä. Pahat unet tulee ruuansulatusvaivoista ja päivän kauhuista, hyviä on märät unet, jotka tulee ylizevuotavista pusseista.
ellauri032.html on line 331: Koirallakin on ymmärrys Hobbes myöntää, mutta apinalla on parempi. No vaikea kai sitä on mennä kieltämään, vaikka koiran on sikäli parempi, että se on vähemmän tehokkaasti tappava. Apinoiden ymmärrys on ajattelua, joka on joko ajatuxen harhailua asiasta kolmanteen, tai tarkoitusperäistä päämäärä-keino muotoista tai ennakoivaa syy-seuraus setvintää. Sellaista jossittelua. Merkit esimerkixi on seurauxia ja keinoja. Kielessä on paljon merkkejä, jotka seuraa toisiaan kuin köyhän talon porsaat, ja seuraa toisistaan kuin syyt ja seurauxet.
ellauri032.html on line 343: Tosi ja epätosi on lauseen attribuutteja. Ei Hobbes pohdi miten ne annetaan. Parmenideen (ja vähän Platoninkin) mielestä se oli ihan outoa, kai koska ne piti kielen mallina noita aataminaikuisia nimiä. Eihän nimet ole valetta, vaikka olis nimiä sarjakuvahahmoille kuten Aku Ankka tai jehova. Ne ei vaan tarkota mitään. Platon marssitti tähän apuun ideat eli yleiskäsitteet, tosi ajatus on oikea symplokee eidoon, kuvakudos. Ideat toisin kuin me yxilöt on ikuisia. Sielukin on sit yleiskäsite, se on meemi. Tänhän mä kekkasin jo toisaalla. Platon(ism)ista tuli mukaan paljon tämmöstä ihan puppua, josta eri sortin mystikot on sitten ammentaneet kauhakaupalla. Apinat on oikeesti ihan vitun hölmöjä, alkeellisia matelijanaivoja. Varsinkin kun niillä on joku oma lehmä ojassa.
ellauri032.html on line 400: Symbolistit oli oikixia herraspoikia, Wille Rydmanneja, idealisteja ja/tai anarkisteja. Nimen kexi Ioannis A. Papadiamantopoulos, Ιωάννης Α. Παπαδιαμαντόπουλος; 15 April 1856 – 31 March 1910), kreikkalainen kriitikko, erottuaxeen muista dekadenteista, vaikka oli hydrofoobi izekin.
ellauri032.html on line 430: Kuului jos kuului. Kleistista on enemmän albumissa 72. Ko. näytelmässä, joka toistaisexi on aika puiseva, mainitaan saxalainen oikeustieteilijä Pufendorf. Samuli Pufendorf oli luteraani, pastori-isä saarnaili Saxissa, Chemnitzin naapurissa ihan Puolan rajalla. Chemnitz, jonka nimi DDR:n aikana oli Karl Marx-Stadt, on kuuluisa kemianteollisuudesta, kivihiilestä ja Zwickausta, jossa valmistettiin Horch-automobiileja. Horch tarkoittaa kuuleppas. Se latinannettiin sitten ja siitä tulitulitulituli Audi. Audi et alteram partem. Me ajettin sen ohize itä-Euroopan matkalla. Samuli oli kotiopettajana herra Coyetilla, joka oli esi-isämme Karl X Kustaan agentti Kööpenhaminassa siihen aikaan, kun Kalle koitti saada aikaan häpeärauhaa ja päästä tanskalaisten kuninkaax. Pöyristyttävää. Coyet oli flaamilaista sukua mutta ruozalaistunut. Tanskalaiset oli vihaisia kuin ampiaiset ja karkotti vieraan vallan agentit Köpixestä. Kallen poika XI ylensi Samulin palveluxista isänmaalle kuusikymppisenä paronixi, minkä jälkeen Samu kuukahti. Samuli kommenteerasi Thomas Hobbesia ja sitä siteerasi USA:n isänmaalliset. Ja von Kleist. Pufendorf tais olla nilkki.
ellauri032.html on line 492: HSn arvostelu ilmestyy vasta koronatauolla. Philip tähdentää olevansa riitaisempi henkilö kuin Rikhard. Kirjassa vaan naiset riitelee, Rikhard väistelee lentäviä lautasia. Rikhardin elämä oli jotakuinkin mallillaan. Avioliitossakaan ei ollut mainittavia ongelmia. Aivan selvästi ei romaanissa käy ilmi, mitä vanhassa liitossa oli vikana. Ja mikä vanhassa Paulassa lopulta oli niin kohtalokasta, että elämä pitää panna uusixi. Uuden suhteen auvoa ei kauan kestä. Siivous ja pyykinpesuvuorot tuottavat jo tulisia riitoja. Entisessä liitossa vaimo varmaan teki kaiken. Grels on melkein curling-vanhempi, joka myötäilee 11-vuotiaan poikansa toiveita. Lapseton Paula tykkää pahan äitipuolen roolista. Grels tykkää vänisevän piipunrassin roolista. Ollaan siis parisuhteen ydinongelmien äärellä. Kantakaupungin kermaperseet eivät pysty parempaan kuin stereotyyppinen lähiöperhe. Pahempaan kyllä on eväitä. Grels saa potkut Hoblan kulttuuripäällikön paikalta ("willfully jobless" kuten Clevelandin lakimies) ja heittäytyy (lue heitetään) "vapaaxi kirjailijaxi" eli "freelancerix" eli "yxinyrittäjäx". Rahat menee lapsenruokoissa. Moralisoivaa äitiä sentään pääsee vähän julkisesti lyttäämään, kirjallisten piipunrassien perinteiseen tapaan (Musset, Knasu, Herzog, Roth, Tikkanen ym ym).
ellauri032.html on line 522: Märta Tikkanen 85 vee on jo aivan böbi. Sen kiukkupussi tyär Susanna Ginman joka esittää seisten taantumuxellisia mielipiteitä Hoblassa on sen omaishoitaja. Märta oli kyllä böbi ennenkuin siitä tuli aivan böbi. Esim se väite ettei miestä voi raiskata on patentisti epätosi. Lukemattomia miehiä ja poikia on raiskattu molemmista päistä. Ikävä ihminen kaiken lisäxi.
ellauri032.html on line 629: Samuel Beckett oli ranskalaistunut irkku irlantilaistuneesta anglikaanisesta hugenottisuvusta. Syntyi pitkänäperjantaina 13.4.1909, samana vuonna kuin Kaarlo Syväntö ja Heikki Brotherus. Samana päivänä kuin Jöns mutta eri vuonna. Sporttinen kriketinpelaaja toteutti Paul Austerin märän unen olemalla 1st class cricket player ja nobelisti samassa naamarissa. (Persona on naamari, muistattehan.) Se oli viimeinen modernisti, sen jälkeen oli enää post. Siinä on jotain samaa kuin Camusissa, muttei kuitenkaan. Existentialisti se ei ole ainakaan. Eikä mikään posetiivari. Enemmänkin sellanen "tilanne on toivoton muttei vakava." Hyvä tyyppi siis siinä suhteessa.
ellauri032.html on line 641: Käydessään 1945 kotona äidin huoneessa se tajusi ettei se koskaan voita James Joycea. Tai no, ei kai Joyce saanut Nobelia, for what it´s worth.Tästä ajasta kerrotaan niissä Krappin keloissa, jotka se julkasi 1958. Siis kun se oli 49. Paha ikä, muistan sen.
ellauri032.html on line 654: Zinzendorfin isoäitikin oli harras pietisti ja Philip Jakob Spenerin ystävä. Tätä kautta Nikke sai kosketuksen pietismiin. Hän kävi koulun (1710–1716) Hallessa August Hermann Francken koulussa, jossa vaikutti Hallen pietismin nimellä vaikuttanut kristillinen herätysliike. Perheen painostuksesta hän siirtyi opiskelemaan lakia Wittenbergiin. Siellä hän tapasi ortodoksiluterilaisia eli puhdasoppisia luterilaisia ja huomasi pietismin ja ortodoksiluterilaisten välillä vallinneen jännitteen. Vuonna 1722 hän avioitui Dresdenissä Ermuthe Dorothea von Reussin kanssa. Heidän perheeseensä syntyi 12 lasta. Zinzendorff jätti lain ja seuras evankeliumia, ja tuli siunatuxi. Zinzendorf kuoli vuonna 1760. Siinä kaikki.
ellauri033.html on line 26: PS. Mun arvaus on et se oli sotaa käymättömän sukupolven kärsimättömyyttä päästä särkemään taas kaikki mihkä niitä edeltävä sukupolvi saarnasi. Länsimainen arvojärjestelmä loi nahkansa. (prophylaxis, health services, popular culture, green revolution, air travel, electronics, shift from industrial to service economy). Apinalauman ja kunkin yxityisen aapan olemassaoloa uhkaavat todelliset vaarat oli nähtävästi voitettu, isänmaallisuuden korvaa globaali viihde ja ikävystyminen leviää sitä lyytä aatelista kaikkiin yhteiskuntaluokkiin.
ellauri033.html on line 37: Fin de siècle snobit
ellauri033.html on line 39: Marcel Proust ja Paul Bourget on fin de siecle snobeja vuosisata ennen mua. Mä oon fin de millenaire snobi. Vähemmän kuin Marcel enemmän kuin Paul.
ellauri033.html on line 51: Sillä oli aatelisia leikkikavereina kuin M. Maigretilla ja Monika Fagerholmilla. Hugon, Byronin ja Ball-sackin fani nuorena, tollasta romanttista realismia ja taantumusta. Osallistu tuhmien snobbailijapoikien kemuihin mutta kauhisteli Rimbaudia.
ellauri033.html on line 61: Bourgetia työnnettiin Nobelin palkinnolle kokonaista 5x, ei napannut. Le Disciple oli Gladstonen mielikirja, sen jota Rullell pienenä niin pelkäsi.Sekin todistanee jotakin.
ellauri033.html on line 68: Kerskuin tällä ja espanjaxi luetulla Cervantesilla leukavasti sittemmin Tapiolan konsultille. Se jotensakin kismitti AHDH vanhusta, joka tarjosi meille samppankaljaa Savonlinnan oopperan väliajalla. Siinä oli keulimisen makua. Siitä se oli snobbailua, niinkuin olikin. Nousukas ei pidä toisesta nousukkaasta.
ellauri033.html on line 93: nu, cuivré, bossue comme un vieux chaudron, œil petit, oblique et
ellauri033.html on line 195: d´avoir inventé et baptisé les documents humains ». Jamais la littérature n´avait accordé tant d´importance au tissu d´une " robe ou à la couleur d´une tapisserie. Bagatelles et colifichets, voilà le plus clair de leurs documents. Ils
ellauri033.html on line 213: observations aient une autorité documentaire. Mais, relative par rapport
ellauri033.html on line 215: chaque homme. Or, la vision des Goncourt ne ressemble à aucune autre : tout objet, en passant à tràvers leur « moi », s´y réfracte fiévreusement.
ellauri033.html on line 226:
A cette vérité mobile, frémissante, que les Goncourt ont attrapée au
ellauri033.html on line 346: Onder zijn "katholieke" romans: L´Oblat, gebaseerd op zijn eigen toetreding als oblaat van de benedictijnen, en later Les foules de Lourdes (De menigten van Lourdes) over Maria en de wonderen in Lourdes, waar Huysmans indirect afrekent met Émile Zola en diens boek Lourdes (1894). Daarnaast herschreef hij in tijdschriftartikelen het leven van Lidwina van Schiedam. Dit leidde tot een heropleving van de verering van deze heilige. Als dank hiervoor heeft het Schiedamse gemeentebestuur een straat naar hem genoemd. Huysmans stierf als volledig ingetreden kloosterling in de pij van een benedictijner broeder aan de gevolgen van long- en botkanker, veroorzaakt door zijn jarenlange kettingroken.
ellauri033.html on line 356: présente aucun danger. » — Rien n´y faisait; vous les désobligiez en
ellauri033.html on line 408: Hra Paul Bourget on mondeeni romaanikirjailija, zygologinen ja moralistinen. Mondeenixi sen maku oli erittäinkin aristokraattinen (vaikka olikin poroporvari). Nuorena innokkaana se kuvitteli runoilevansa "vernissatuissa saappaissa ja vaaleissa käsineissä". Idoli oli silloin pukeutunut viimeisen muodin mukaan. Sitä on usein pilkattu nokkelahkosti sen eleganteista tavoista ja innostuxesta salonkien ja buduaarien pikku rivouxiin. Se vaikutti sanalla sanoen aika snobilta. No se ei ole "kirjallisuudessa" kovin harvinaista. Yx Paulin henkilöistä, kiltti runoilija Rene Vincy, huomauttaa aika naivisti: Me kirjailijat, meillä on hirvee hinku hienoihin siusustuxiin: Balzacilla oli se, Mussetilla oli se, se on sellanen pieni lapsellinen piirre. Snobi voi olla monella tavalla. ... On snobeja ja snobeja, tämmöinen pieni viaton on kaikista anteexiannettavin.
ellauri033.html on line 410: Pahansuovat sielut pilkkaa Hra Bourgetin harrasta snobiutta, mut siinä voi nähdä tietyn pyrkimyxen tarkkuuteen. Eikös buduaarit ja salongit ole vaan kehys, jossa sen romaanit kukoistelevat, miljöö missä sen sankarit kehittyvät? Kyllähän se herkuttelee ihan sikana pikkuseikoilla kuten prenikoilla ja pukukoruilla. Suurin osa Hra Bourgetin henkilöistä pukeutuu hirmu huolella, mut eikös niillä ole syytäkin? Jos markiisi Bonnive tekee vaikutuxen Rva Nancayhyn, se saa kiittää siitä sen kauluksen ja mansettien hienoa leikkausta ja leveetä mohairnauhaa, joka roikkuu hienosta kultahakasesta, johon on kiinnitetty sen antiikkinen lornjetti. Ja mixkä ei Rva de Tillieres Raymond Casain ilmestyttyä nää kaunopuheisessa ja kiltissä Poyannessa, jota se on rakastanut uskollisesti vuosikausia, enää kuin hövelin ja lurittelevan tunkeilijan? Sen ymmärtääxemme Pollen on näytettävä että Casai on hienoston makutuomari, jonka pukeutumishuoneessa nuoret näkee hienon hyllyn jolla on upeasti järjestettynä 92 paria kenkiä. Ei ihme että Rva Tilliers on höxötyxissään vaan sen nimen kuullessaan.
ellauri033.html on line 418: Zygologina Paul Hra Bourget on pannut moraalin takasin romaaniin. Aikana jolloin suoraviivainen luonnontieteilevä zygologia tukehdutti koko alan, kun sielutiede oli pelkkää ihmiseläimen tutkimusta, Hra Bourget lainasi luonnontieteilijöiden menetelmiä ja sovelsi niitä hormonien sijasta sielun kaiveluun. Tätä arvonimeä en tohdi siltä riisua. Se oli romaaneissa ensimmäisiä ja ehkä väkevin reaktionääri, joka vastusti tuota summittaista väkivaltaa, sielun lyhkäsex myyvää filosofiaa joka palauttaa ihmistoiminnan ruokahaluihin, ja sulkee luonnosta ja taiteesta kaiken mihin materialismi ei ylety. Ikävä kyllä sen reaktio löi aika lailla ylize. Se korvas yhden kaavan toisella: sosiobiologian joka puristaa sielun kuivaxi se korvaa koulusielutieteellä, joka exyy abstraktioihin. Ei siitä synny yhtään todennäköisempiä henkilöitä. Kaikista sen hahmoista ei mikään elä eikä jää mieleen. Sen analyysi rajoittuu hirmu ahtaisiin raameihin, ja sen tyypit on aina samanlaisia.
ellauri033.html on line 428: Pahimmassa tapauxessa tyypit vois olla ihan erilaisia eri luvuissa. No ei Hra Bourget ihan niin pitkälle mene, vaikka pitääkin kovaa melua ponin minän moneudesta. Useimmiten löytyy vaan kaxi minäehdokasta, esim. Robert Greslou, Loup-Garou ihmissusi, ompasusi joka löytää sisästään kaxi eri oliota, yxi selkeä älykäs rehellinen, kova henkisen työn tekijä, ja toinen pimeä, julma, impulsiivinen. Tai toi Rva de Tillieres, jolla on 2 heilaa, Poyanne ja Casai, jotka tyydyttää sen kahta eri jotain (en sentään sano aukkoa). Vaan Rva Moraine kirjassa Mensonges sisältää kolme persoonallisuutta. Siinä on yx joka tykkää luxuxesta, toinen joka tykkää lemmestä, ja kolmas joka haluu huomiota. Odottakaas! Kun Larcher päättelee: se on aika moni poni, abbe Taconnet vastaa doucement kuin Pirkko: Komplisoituko? ... tiedän, te käytätte nitä sanoja välttääxenne yxinkertaisempia. Se on vaan onneton joka on tunteittensa vallassa. Jos appi on oikeassa, mitä jää Hra Bourgetin zygologisista pölinöistä? Oikeassahan appi on, Suzanne on yxinkertainen elukka. Se mistä Hra Bourget tekee ison numeron koko kirjan pituudelta, voidaan tiivistää tähän: siinä kisailee sielu ja ruumis, enkeli ja nauta. Eikä siinä mitään, mut pitääx siitä tehdä tollasta zygologista sanasalaattia.
ellauri033.html on line 477: Wyszewski pahoittelee ihan Jeremiaan ja Platonin äänenpainoilla, että senaikaiset romaanit, teatteri, kaikki fin-de-siecle häärintä ovat ällösti latistaneet vuosisataiset kunnian ja ylpeyden, perhesiteiden ja uskonnon meemit. 20v kestänyt snobeilu ja uuber-menscheily on ollut ihan perseestä, ajatellen nyt vaan vaikka meidän omia pentuja. (No niitähän ei porvari-Paavalilla ollut, lukuunottamatta Fifiä.)
ellauri033.html on line 485:
ellauri033.html on line 496: Ensimmäisen konsulikautensa aikana 222 eaa. Marcellus taisteli Insubriassa ja saavutti spolia opiman kolmatta ja viimeistä kertaa Rooman historiassa. (The spolia opima ("rich spoils") were the armour, arms, and other effects that an ancient Roman general stripped from the body of an opposing commander slain in single combat. The spolia opima were regarded as the most honourable of the several kinds of war trophies a commander could obtain, including enemy military standards and the peaks of warships.) Hän vapautti roomalaisen varuskunnan Clasditiumissa ja valtasi Mediolanumin. Vuonna 216 eaa. Rooman hävittyä Cannaessa hän komensi armeijan jäännöksiä Canusiumissa ja pelasti Nolan ja eteläisen Campanian Hannibalilta. Vuosina 214–211 eaa. hän oli konsulina kolmatta kertaa palvellen Sisiliassa. Hän hyökkäsi Leontinoihin ja valtasi Syrakusan kahden vuoden piirityksen jälkeen. Hänen joukkonsa surmasivat tiedemies Arkhimedeen kaupungin valtauksen yhteydessä. (Noli turbare circulos meos.) Marcellius ryösti kaupungin ja toi sen aarteet Roomaan. Hän oli konsulina jälleen 210 eaa. vallaten Salapian Apuliassa, joka oli kapinoinut liittyen Hannibaliin. Vuonna 209 eaa. hän taisteli ratkaisemattomaan päättyneen taistelun Hannibalia vastaan Venusiassa. Hän sai surmansa väijytyksessä viidennellä konsulikaudellaan 208 eaa. ollessaan tiedustelemassa vihollisen asemia.
ellauri033.html on line 512: Noniin siis tässon eka tää M. Adrian Sixte, professori joka on hirmu ateisti hyypiö, se pysähtyy puistossa joka päivä nauramaan apinahäkin eteen kuin Lassi vanhempineen: hyi ällöä! Mix mä en saa tehdä noin? Tule Lassi mennään kazomaan lintuja. Mut silti niin tuttua. Ja se menee pitemmälle kuin Kant, Spenser tai Taine, eikä jätä jumalalle edes pientä rakoa, tommosta käsittämättömyyden koloa, jossa se voisi vielä kyykkiä suojassa tieteeltä. Eikä siinä kaikki, se koittaa tehdä sosiobiologiaa ennen aikojaan ja johtaa "meidän" kaikista hienoimmat meemit jostain darwinistisista apinajutuista. Siis todella paha mies, nyt ei ole hyvä fiilis kellään. Sen emäntä ompelee salaa pyhäinnappeja sen liiveihin.
ellauri033.html on line 589: Nyt alkaa Pollen snobimaisuus nostaa päätänsä. Tää ompasusi, joka siis on varottava esimerkki siitä mihin mal du siecle johtaa harhaanohjatuissa nuorissa, tää rotinkainen (kuten Polle) vihaa 1) aatelisia 2) rojalisteja 3) armeijaheppuja, ja yrittää olla vihaamatta sakuja, koska sen ihailemat Kant, Schopenhauer, Lotze, Fechner, Helmholtz ja Wundt on makkaramiehiä. Kardinaalimunaus! Edellisiä siis 1)-3) pitää ihailla ja jälkimmäisiä, siis sakuja vihata. Se on ranskalaista patriotismia.
ellauri033.html on line 591: Sanoo mitä sanoo, pikku kotiope on kade isobroidimaiselle kreiville, niinkuin moni väpelömpi pikkuveli fyysisesti ylivoimaiselle veljelle, nimiä nyt mainizematta. Goethen Faust oli samalla lailla kade Mefistolle, väittää Polle. Amielin päiväkirja ilmestyi näihin samoihin aikoihin, siinä vasta vätys. Se oli Kristinan mielikirjoja. Muakin teini-ikäisenä vitutti et olin niin väpelö. Koitin koulumatkalla opetella kävelemään reippaammin ja heiluttamaan käsiä. Jossain Johannexen seurakuntakodin kohdalla, missä Ilmo Launis ja sen pojat pehmitti Jöpiä. Seurauxet on vieläkin nähtävissä jönsin henkisessä habituxessa. Vallatonta ja vakavaa.
ellauri033.html on line 663: Mutta nää pöntöt pökiöt jotka pelaa peliteorian käsitteillä ei suostu ymmärtämään, että peliteoriakin on determinististä, ja siihen liittyvät tunteetkin determinoituja. Totta kai Adrien tuntee syyllisyyttä, koska se on ennustettavasti loukannut näitä robotteja koskevia pelisääntöjä. Robotit on ohjelmoitu niin, että ne tuntee vastuuta ja kärsii mielellänsä rangaistuxia. Rangaistuxet toimii niillä kuin pikku sähköiskut, lataa niiden pattereita ja tahdistaa niiden käytöstä. Ei siinä ole mitään ristiriitaista.
ellauri033.html on line 681: Baruch Spinoza on Barak Obaman kaima. Etunimestä oli puhetta Jobin kirjassa. Se meinaa siunattua eli Penttiä. Sukunimi on 1536 inkvisitiota paenneidenn sefardijuutalaisten portugalia ja meinaa piikikästä. Aika selkärankaa ja siilipuolustusta varmaan vaatikin olla deterministinen mut samalla protestanttishenkinen mamu jutkufilosofi Hollannissa 1600-luvulla.
ellauri033.html on line 685: Filosofien foaf-netissä se on melko iso hämähäkki, se on saanu ja antanu vaikutteita joka puolella. (Täähän on kuin coronan tartuntaverkkoja, meemien leviämistä!) Saamapuolella plussaa on Avicenna, Averroes, Aristoteles, Demokritos, Lucretius, Epikuros, Niccolo Machiavelli, Thomas Hobbes, Giordano Bruno. Miinusta Descartes, stoalaiset.
ellauri033.html on line 817: Girondistit oli olleet 1789 vallankumouxen maltillisuusmiehiä, keskustalaisia menshevikkejä, jotka jakobiinibolshevikit sittemmin pani pölkylle. Hullun vuoden 1848 helmikuun vallankumouxen jälkeen Lamartine pyrki pressaxi, mut oli liian girondistinen: demokraattinen ja pasifistinen. Pian tämän jälkeen Alf vetäytyi politiikasta ja keskittyi kirjoittamiseen. Ei mennyt sekään ihan putkiloon:
ellauri033.html on line 897: Ô lac ! rochers muets ! grottes ! forêt obscure !
ellauri033.html on line 1048: Renouvelle en fuyant ce mobile univers ! ja mennen tullen uusintaa mobiilin universumin!
ellauri033.html on line 1115: Selon sa généalogie, Villiers de L´Isle-Adam appartient à l´ancienne et illustre famille des Villiers, seigneurs de l´Isle-Adam : toutefois, cette généalogie présente des trous qui, de son vivant déjà, ont provoqué des doutes, renforcés en 1928 par un article de Max Prinet paru au Mercure de France. D´après lui, il descend d´une famille de la noblesse de robe parisienne, et son premier ancêtre certain est un Jean de Villiers, procureur des comptes au début du XVIIe siècle. Un autre Jean de Villiers, petit-fils du précédent, s´établit en Bretagne et devient le premier à ajouter à son nom le nom de la terre de « L´Isle-Adam » et à prétendre ainsi à une parenté imaginaire avec les seigneurs de L´Isle-Adam.
ellauri033.html on line 1122: Mixi snobi Bourget ei voinut sietää Ernu-setää
ellauri033.html on line 1125: Ernest Renan est né le 28 février 1823 à Tréguier (Côtes-du-Nord) et mort le 2 octobre 1892 à Paris.
Isä oli bretagnelainen kalastuslaivan kapteeni, kova tasavaltalainen, äiti konservatiivi Bordeauxista. Renan sai pappiskoulutuksen varmaan äiskän toiveesta ja tunnettiin etevänä opiskelijana. Opinnot saivat hänet kuitenkin luopumaan papinurasta.
ellauri033.html on line 1148: Vuonna 1882 julkaisemassaan kuuluisassa esseessä Qu´est-ce qu´une nation? (Mikä kansakunta on?) joka ilmestyi vihkosena Que sais-je? sarjassa, hän hylkäsi useimpien nationalistien vaaliman ajatuksen kansakuntien ikiaikaisuudesta ja luonnollisuudesta. Hänen mukaansa kansakunta oli sitä vastoin joukko ihmisiä, joita yhdisti solidaarisuus ja vapaaehtoinen halu kuulua yhteen, ”joka päivä uudistettava kansanäänestys”. Ei ihme että snobi protonazi Bourget ja sen hampuusikaveri Barrès karsasti Ernu-setää kuin ruttoa. Renan oli sentään tiedemies eikä mikään pöyhkeilevä pelle.
ellauri034.html on line 292: Se että nykyporukat uhoo näistä 2 viime maailmansodasta on teleskooppivaikutusta. Lähellä asiat näyttää isommilta, kuten se New Yorkerin kansi jossa NY ja itärannikko melkein täytti koko horisontin. Maailmansotia on ollut vaikka kuinka monta, maailma vaan oli pienempi ja aseet tylsempiä. Ruumiitakin tulee enemmän teollisella prosessilla, tuhon tuottavuus on kasvanut. Tää tuli mieleen 7v sodasta, joka kuulostaa lyhkäseltä, mut oli pitempi kuin kumpikaan maailmansota, ja globaalinen siirtomaasota sekin. Länsihyeenat ja itäsakaalit eri notmiiden haaskalla. Siitä ei Suomessa juuri kuule kun Suomi ei ollut vielä järin mukana klopaalissa menossa 1756-1763. Ei pitäneet sen ajan Timo Soinit vielä plokia Prysselistä käsin. Ruozin sähläys 7-vuotisessa sodassa oli Pommerin sota, mistä suomalaiset ei kostuneet muuta kuin pommes frites. Tutustuttiin pitkäaikaiseen ystäväämme maapäärynään. Drakassa pojat nauro itäuusmaalaiselle maajussille joka sano peerun eikä potatis. Peruna on hävinnyt täällä pizzalle, ja silli kepapille. Maailman suurin perunanviljelijä on Kiina.
ellauri034.html on line 294: August von Kotzebue tapettiin keppijumppanujakassa 1819. Alaskassa on Kotzebuen salmi ja kaupunki, Otto von Kotzebuen mukaan nimetty. Räävelissä 1787 syntynyt Otto, Akun poika, kartoitti Alaskaa ryssille. Ryssä möi sen sitten jenkeille 1867. 100v myöhemmin meidän perhe kazoi Suomi 50 ilotulitusta tähtitorninmäeltä. Sitä 50v uudempi on kuva missä Saarinen ja kuningatar hymyilevät linnan juhlissa Suomi 100-kyltin kyljessä.. Alexander Kotzebue maalasi hulluna vuotena 1948 taulun 7-vuotisen sodan Kunersdorfin taistelusta kaxi vuosisataa ennen kuin mä aloitin Tehtaankadun kansakoulun 1959. Oli varmaan samaa huonetta ja sukua. Kunersdorfissa ryssä ja itävalta löivät Friedrich der Grossen armeijan, suuret preussilaiset pienixi muruixi. Saxan suurvaltatoiveet tyssäsivät taas. Verdammt! Retu jäi kotiin hoitamaan kihtiä kaalinlehtikääryleillä Emanuel Bachin säestäessä cembalolla. Kuten kertoilee mamuprofessori Crister Pursiainen populäärishistoriallisessa pläjäyxessä hovitsempalisti ja hänen kuninkaansa 2017, kirjan lainasi Riku Seijalle joka ei myöskään jaxa sitä lukea. Rikuilla oli Somervillessä pörhöhäntäinen kissanpoika nimeltä obürste">Klobürste. Se oxenteli karvapalloja. Zum kotzen.
ellauri034.html on line 325: Morbidia matematiikkaa laskeskelee Hoblan
ellauri034.html on line 335: "Valet står inte mellan att låta viruset ha sin gång för att snabbt ätergä till livet som det var, eller att på obestämd tid stänga ner hela landet. Diskussionen måste nyanseras." "Det handlar ingalunda om att ställa människoliv mot recession, möjligen depression, eller om at kompromissa med vår humanistiska samhällssyn."
ellauri034.html on line 413: Freud syntyi hassuhattuiseen hasidiperheeseen lumppukauppiaan Jakob Freudin kolmannen vaimon, sitä 20v nuoremman nätin tytön esikoisena. Sigismund on romanttinen goy nimi, takuulla Amelia äidin valizema. Toinen nimi Schlomo on todennäköisemmin isältä, joka oli kyllä maallistunut. Joo se oli isoisän nimi. Isoäiti oli Peppi. Siggen Abbe sedällä oli vajaita lapsia ja Josef-setä puuhas hämäriä puuhia.
ellauri034.html on line 415: Jacobin toisesta vaimosta Rebeccasta ei ole tietoa eikä lapsia. Lisää aiheesta Genesixessä. Freudin Jacobilla oli voittopuolisesti tyttöjä. Israelin Jakobilla oli vaan se yx tytär Dinah, joka raiskattiin. (Ei siis se salaisuussarjan äxympi tyttö, sen Philipin sisko jolla oli papukaija Kiki. Jonka, siis Kikin, lajitoveri oli vankina Heinolan lintujen keskitysleirissä. Oppistalallaa, kylä lähti taas muistojeni mopo käsistä.) Amalian sisaruxet mm Siggen mielieno Hermann asu Wienissä. Ne oli hyvinvoivia. Sixkai lumppukauppiaan perhekin muutti sinne. Sukukuvassa on väkeä kuin salpausselällä, serkkuja ja tunnistamattomiakin sysslingejä ja pysslingejä. Freudit ja Bernaysit nai ristiin kuin Rousseaun vanhemmat tai Brotheruxet ja Carlsonit.
ellauri034.html on line 421: Asuivat mamuina Määrin Freibergissä eli Slovakian Priborissa. Ne oli köyhiä, isä Jakob 1815–1896 oli siis kai huono lumppukauppias. Asuivat hellahuoneessa lukkosepän hyyryläisinä. Jakob ja 2 isovelipuolta, Amelia ja pikku Sigge. Seizemän muuta oli vielä tulossa. Aika Singer oli lumppukauppias.
ellauri034.html on line 441: Martta oli iloluontoinen ja tehokss perheenemäntä. Vainosi obsessiivisesti fläkkejä kuin Castrenin Synnöve. Martalla oli sievä pikkusisko Minna, joka asui niiden huushollissa ja jota Sigge myös rakasti, todennäköisesti bylsikin kuin Juhani Aho. Hmm, eikä pahaa sanaa sanottu. Tais Martha pois ne pyyhältää kuin Ööve fläkit Tammen kultaisen kirjan kannesta. Ei muka tiennyt, sallikaa mun nauraa.
ellauri034.html on line 443: Pappa Jakob kuoli 1896 81-vuotiaana. Sigge 1939 aetatis suae 83. Pitkäikäisiä geenejä, pitkiä telomeerejä.
ellauri034.html on line 460: Hoblan tuon talousliberalismin lipun kolumnisti vaatii jo, että yhteiskunnan pitää valvoa ettei rivistä poikkeajat polta tupakkaa, liho liikaa tai muuten rasita yhteistä terveydenhuoltopottia. Se ei ole vaan niiden asia, kyllä meilläkin on siinä sanamme sanottavana, ja se sana on EI. EI tupakointia, EI ryyppäämistä, EI roskaruuan syömistä. Tarkkailkaa naapurianne ja raportoikaa poikkeavuuxista.
ellauri034.html on line 503: Se on täsmälleen päinvastaista kuin Jeesuxen globaaliliberalismi,
ellauri035.html on line 455: Sobbing out my life beside the waters.
ellauri035.html on line 994: > Onko Aarne Kinnunenkin snobi? Kaise vähän on. Lisäsin sen suomalaisten snobien hall of fameen. Merikadun Carlsonit on ainakin, vaikkei tunnettuja. Kateet serkut Clasun lapset kyllä tiesi sen.
ellauri035.html on line 1012: As panic over coronavirus spreads, we have to make the ultimate choice – either we enact the most brutal logic of the survival of the fittest or some kind of reinvented communism with global coordination and collaboration.
ellauri035.html on line 1028: Näitä jönsin inhokkeja yhdistää koleraepidemiaan kuolleen Friedrich Hegelin filosofia. Tollasia idealisteja ovat molemmat. Kehityxeen uskovat. Niin ja molemmat kuuluvat postmodernistiaaltoon, jonka on nyt hukuttanut mobiilin ja videon zunami. Kuka välittää enää mistä textit tulevat, kun textit on kaikki TLDR. Zizekin kohalta se on sitäpaizi sikahelppo sanoa, se kopsaa izeltä.
ellauri035.html on line 1033: ”The move from a structuralist account in which capital is understood to structure social relations in relatively homologous ways to a view of hegemony in which power relations are subject to repetition, convergence, and rearticulation brought the question of temporality into the thinking of structure, and marked a shift from a form of Althusserian theory that takes structural totalities as theoretical objects to one in which the insights into the contingent possibility of structure inaugurate a renewed conception of hegemony as bound up with the contingent sites and strategies of the rearticulation of power.”
ellauri035.html on line 1043: Rabinow on vähän kuin Samu Butlerin Erewhonin maahanmuuttaja. He is a real erewhon man / sitting in his erewhon land / making all his erewhon plans for nobody.
Utopistista paskanjauhantaa Thomas Moren malliin. Sitäkään mä en ole vielä jauhanut. Näitä permutaatioita hyppypapujen asennoista apinoiden päässä piisaa. Oxymoroneita, the more the merrier.
ellauri035.html on line 1064: Anthropos is a problem
ellauri035.html on line 1066: Anthropos is a problem, osuvasti sanoo Paul Rabinow, antropologian nykyaikainen professori. Anthropos, sä olet "the human thing". Rabinowin heimoveli Jakob Watertownissa kertoi wizin, jossa samojedit ei halunneet juoda lähetyssaarnaajan pippelin palanpainikkeena Pepsiä. Mixi ei, kysyi Pepsi-kauppias. Koska "things go better with Coke". LOL.
ellauri035.html on line 1081: Keskustellessaan etnografian etiikasta joku kade Fine käsittelee Rainbowin työtä Marokossa – Robinow hän puhuu nimenomaisesti seksuaalisesta suhteesta, joka hänellä oli prostituoidun kanssa, kun hänen informanttinsa tarjosi hänelle mahdollisuuden nussia tämän kanssa. Fine käyttää tätä esimerkkinä yhtenä harvoista tapauksista, joissa etnografi paljastaa tällaisia henkilökohtaisia tietoja, mikä on vastoin yleistä suuntausta, jonka mukaan tällaiset herkullisen mehevät yksityiskohdat jätetään pois julkaisuista ja kerrotaan vaan kokoustauoilla.
ellauri035.html on line 1134: no el medieval (la mujer ser extraordinario, se le rinde culto ca-balleresco), no el del Renacimiento (nada sobrenatural la mujer, pero con su eterno encanto), sino el del Viejo Testamento (la mujer criatura satánica).
ellauri035.html on line 1142: Pesimismo relativo cristiano no es el mismo materialista y absoluto de hombres como Schopenhauer y Nietzsche. Levantando algo el plano de observación, diré que tiene el pesimismo y el optimismo del cristianismo: pesimismo en la vida, optimismo en el fin de la vida.
ellauri035.html on line 1148: Cultivar el intelecto, educar y templar la voluntad, regir la conducta con discreción y prudencia en el trato social. Su lección es de energía y perseverancia, de discreción y virtud. Tuvo el P. Baltasar una mentalidad robusta y el genio práctico del fundador de su orden, de Ignacio de Loyola. Y así, enseña sin idealismos, ni sentimentalismos, ni metafísicas.
ellauri036.html on line 255: S'agcnouillant au loin dans leurs robes de pierre,
ellauri036.html on line 279: Sous ton divin tombeau le sol s'est dérobé :
ellauri036.html on line 378: Tel que la robe d'or du jeune Alcibiade,
ellauri036.html on line 381: Ce n'était pour personne un objet de mystère
ellauri036.html on line 386: C'était un noble cœur, naïf comme l'enfance,
ellauri036.html on line 438: Elle dort, regardez : — quel front noble et candide!
ellauri036.html on line 484: Traversaient en sueur des corridors obscurs.
ellauri036.html on line 519: Ohl sur quel océan, sur quelle grotte obscure,
ellauri036.html on line 681: Ô femme! étrange objet de joie et de supplice!
ellauri036.html on line 770: Le noble n'est plus fier du sang de ses ancêtres;
ellauri036.html on line 863: Mais, quand elle pétrit ses nobles créatures,
ellauri036.html on line 900: Il m'a baisée au front dans ma robe dorée;
ellauri036.html on line 914: Jacque était immobile, et regardait Marie.
ellauri036.html on line 919: Les murs de cette chambre obscure et délabrée
ellauri036.html on line 932: Lui qui n'a pas vendu sa robe d'innocence;
ellauri036.html on line 1952: YouTube co-founder Jawed Karim credits the incident with leading to the creation of the video sharing website. The incident also made "Janet Jackson" the most searched person and term of 2004 and 2005. The incident broke the record for "most searched event over one day". The incident became the most watched, recorded and replayed television moment in TiVo history and "enticed an estimated 35,000 new [TiVo] subscribers to sign up". The term "wardrobe malfunction" was coined as a result of the incident, and was eventually added to the Merriam-Webster's Collegiate Dictionary.
ellauri036.html on line 2097: Albuksen kaarti (engl. Dumblenamit, kutsutaan lyhenteellä "AK") esiintyy kirjassa Feelix-kissa. Dumblesetä tai ainakin sen esittäjä imi mieluusti peiton alla namia. JK pitää semmoisesta yhtä paljon kuin Päivi Räsänen. Rohkelikot on pääsääntöisesti kikkelimikkoja ja halinallet tyttöjä, mikä siihen lisätään on pahasta, ei me haluta olla mitään transformereita. Kaarti on kerho, jossa Harry opettaa suojautumista näiltä pimeyden voimilta. Esim varmuuskumin käyttöä. Kerho perustettiin, koska sinä lukuvuonna uusi pimeyden voimilta suojautumisen opettaja Dolores Pimento on taikaministeriön työntekijä, eikä hän ministeriön käsitysten mukaan opeta ainetta kunnolla. Wannabe taikaministeri Hermione ideoi Albuksen kaartin. Hän kutsuu viikonloppuna kiinnostuneita oppilaita Tylyahon Sianpäähän, jossa salainen kerho perustetaan. Kaartin kokoontumispaikka löytyy, kun kotitonttu Dobby kertoo Harrylle tarvehuoneesta. Kaarti lakkautettiin, kun Marietta Edgecombe paljasti kaartin olemassaolon Pimennolle. Kaarti perustettiin uudelleen, kun Kalkaroksesta tuli Tylypahkan rehtori. Albuxen kaarti on kuin Hitlerjugendin pikkupoikasiipi Deutsches Jungvolk.
ellauri036.html on line 2099: Kotitonttu Dobby on jotain koiran ja palvelusväen väliltä. Tämmöinen satumaailma on oiva paikka kansoittaa kaikenlaisilla epäsikiöillä, joilla on vastineensa myös todellisuudessa, ainakin jonkun J.K.Rowlingin päässä vallizevassa sellaisessa.
ellauri036.html on line 2137: GK Chesterton. HK Riikonen. Hande on kuin Harryn ja Dobbyn ristisiitos. Rumimmat kuteet ja pisin naama. Brittein saaren tyhmin Harry nai kuraverisen ja myy nyt herttuallisia saattopalveluja Losissa. Trump ei maxa suojelua kuraverisille. Ne on liian alttiita viruxille. En pidä siitä, se tviittaa.
ellauri037.html on line 159: Obgleich er von Arbeit besessen war, fand er Zeit für Sex zwischen den Filmen, "in den Stunden wenn ich gelangweilt bin". Wie Markus J. Rantala vorausgesagt hat ex post facto, er zog junge Mädghen vor. Er konnte nichts mehr geniessen, als eine knospende Jungfrau zu verführen. Die erste Schützling war 14 Jahre alt. Er versprach eine Filmkarriere, aber schon bald darauf war sie schwanger. Sie war so dumm dass er sie heiratete obwohl sie gar nicht schwanger war. Charlie liebte es, Starlets nach der Bühne auch in seinem Bett zu verwenden. Die nächste Starlet war 6 als Charlie sie merkte, aber er war geduldig wie der Prophet Muhammed und versuchte sie zu ficken erst als sie 15 war. Schliesslich entjungferte er Lita auf dem gekachelten Fussboden seines Dampfbades. Er wollte nicht Gummis benutzen, sie wären "unästetisch". Lita wurde schwanger als sie 16 war. Er war 35.
ellauri037.html on line 160: Er versuchte, das Kind abzutreiben, Lita mit irgendeinem anderen zu weihen, sie zum Selbstmord zu jagen, weil er sie soviel verabscheute. Er war eklich. Aber er behauptete, dass er mit Lita schlafen könne, obwohl er sie soviel verabscheue. Er demütigte sie oft, weil sie weigerte, Fellatio zu machen.
ellauri037.html on line 249: Wislava Szymborska oli Callen ikäinen. Syntyi 5kk myöhemmin ja eli 2v kauemmin. Vuoden 1966 nobelisti. Puolan Mozartixi sanottiin. Se otti outoja näkökulmia, esim. kissan äsken kuolleen omistajan asunnossa. Siltä jäi alle 350 runoa. Kysyttynä mix niin vähän se sanoi: mulla on rode kotona. LOL. Mieti sitä, el Lauri, revi siitä.
ellauri037.html on line 351: And who's this little fellow in his itty-bitty robe?
ellauri037.html on line 382: honest businesses, obliging neighbors,
ellauri037.html on line 478: Joseph Étienne, dit Étienne de Jouy né le 19 octobre 1764 à Versailles et mort le 4 septembre 1846 à Saint-Germain-en-Laye, etait un dramaturge et librettiste français.
ellauri037.html on line 561: Lähdetään siis Danzigista eli Gdanskista, jossa Arttu syntyi 100v ennen Mikko Rothia. Sen iskä Heikki oli saxalais-hollantilainen patriisi ja äiti Johanna monilahjakas salonginpitäjä ja kirjaltaja. Se Schopen lapiosana tulee siis hollannista. Uskonnottomia olivat, vallankumouxellisia rebublikaaneja, kosmopoliitteja ja anglofiilejä. Toisin kuin Sope siis, taas, paitsi sitä ateismia. Kun Gdanskista tuli osa Preussia, lipilaari Heikki muutti perheineen länsimielisempään Hampuriin. Artun pikkusisko Adele oli sitä 8 vuotta nuorempi. Ei siis leikkikaveri, vaan ärsyttävä vanhempien lemmikki kuin Riku. Heikki ja Hanna antoi lapsilleen A:lla alkavat nimet, niinkuin saman pesueen koiranpennuille. Artun koirankin nimi oli Atma. Arttu oli vaihdossa Ranskassa ja styylas siellä ikätoverinsa pojan kanssa, ja soitti sen kanssa huilua. 15v jolppina se lähti Euroopanympärimatkalle vanhempien kaa, business and pleasure. Tää oli Heikin juonia: se halus Artun perhebisnexeen, Arttu halus yliopistoon joka oli iskän mielestä turhuutta. Jos haluut matkalle, niin sit jatkat sen jälkeen kauppakoulussa. Jos haluut verstaalle, niin unohda koko turnee. No se lähti reisulle, mut katu sitä myöhemmin. Wimbledonissa oli tyyyylllsäää jossain anglikaanikoulussa. Sixikin se vihas uskontoa myöhemmin. Heikki rähjäsi Artulle huonoista todistuxista niin kovasti, että Hanna pelkäsi sen menettäneen järkensä. Ehkä menettikin. Heikki hyppäs kanaaliin Hampurissa 1805. Se oli yhtä autisti kuin poikansa, ja yhtä masis. Sope sanoikin et sen luonne on isän peruja. Isän puolella oli enemmänkin hulluja. Äiskä sensijaan oli seuraihminen. Sope ihaili isäänsä kai six kun ei pärjännyt alkuunkaan äidille, ja äiti vaan hemmotteli pikku Adia. No Heikiltä jäi mojova potti, joka jaettin kolmeen osaan. Arttu sijoitti omansa varovasti valtionobligaatioihin ja nettosi sillä 2x enemmän kuin yliopiston professori. Oli varaa sitten vittuilla koulufilosofeille.
ellauri037.html on line 573: Äiti alkoi kirjottaa menestysromaaneja kun Arttu lähti Berliiniin. Arttu kuunteli Berliinissä Fichteä mut heti tuli riitoja, ja Fichten luennot oli tylsiä ja vaikeetajusia. Sitähän ei voi Sopesta sanoa, se menee kansaan kuin häkä, ja se mitä ei ymmärrä, kuulostaa kuitenkin kohtalokkaaan hienolta. Ei se pitänyt Schleiermacheristakaan, se oli liian jumalinen. Sope suuntas kohti ateismia. Sope luki Platon, Kantin ja Fichten lisäxi tiedelehteä ja Schellingiä, Friesiä (?), Jacobia, Baconia ja Lockea. Sivuaineina oli filologiaa (se harrasti kökköä etymologiaa vielä seniilinä) ja luonnontiedettä.
ellauri037.html on line 596: Koleraa paossa Frankfurtissa Sope oli masis ja huonossa hapessa. Kirjoitti köyhtyneelle ja suosiosta pudonneelle äiskälle, joka pelkäs et nyt se Sope menee samaa tietä kuin Heikkikin. No ei siitä sen enempää, Sope piristyi, mut välit äiskään ei järin lämmenneet. Kun Johanna kuoli, Arttu oli ihan että obit anus, obit anus.
ellauri037.html on line 617: tradition fortzuführen, obwohl er es haßte. Als ihn seine Mutti
ellauri037.html on line 642: Vornamen Theresa kennen. Er erwog eine Heirat, wobei er peinlich genau ihre Fehler und ihre Vorzüge gegeneinander abwog. Er entschied sich gegen eine Heirat, als sie ihn in peinliche Verlegenheit brachte, indem sie in der Offentlichkeit in den höchsten Tonen von einem anderen Mann schwärmte - von Lord Byron. Schopenhauer schrieb: «Ich fürchtete mich vor Hörnern »
ellauri037.html on line 673: Dennoch hat er die Frauen nie aus seinem Leben verbannt. In einer Zeitschrift schrieb er von einem «Fräulein Medon», einer Schauspielerin von großem Charme, die mit bürgerlichem Namen Caroline Richter hieß. Er umwarb und gewann sie, und wieder dachte er an Heirat. Nach seiner sorgfältigen Analyse war sie "recht zufriedenstellend", als Geliebte oder als Ehefrau. Aber wieder erhoben sich seine Vorsicht und sein Zynismus. Er war verliebt, aber er war auch Philosoph. Sein Pessimismus gewann die Oberhand, und die Idee einer Heirat wurde fallengelassen. Schopenhauer bedeutete sein absolutes Vertrauen auf die Unsterblichkeit seiner Werke mehr als Kinder, die er der Nachwelt hätte hinterlassen können. Dank Gott.
ellauri037.html on line 688: Willfully jobless lakimies Clevelandista sanoo Quorassa että Freud oli idiot. Jung oli sen kaa samaa mieltä. Sopen se löysi Freudin alaviitteestä. Sope oli kyllä clueless about women mut niin oon mäkin (sanoo lakimies). Sopella se johtui vaan sen onnettomasta lapsuudesta eli ilkeästä äidistä. Isistä ja Goethesta Sope tykkäsi ja ne siitä. Goethe otti Sopen siipiensä suojaan, unter sanftem Wing. Naisia lukuunottamatta Sope ajattelee suurenmoisesti ja kauniisti, se ymmärtää lakimiehiä ja niiden unia, ja ne sitä. Frankfurtissakin nimenomaan lakimiehet oli sen fänejä. Mikähän siinä on? Lakimehet ja taiteilijat. Veikkaan huumorittomuutta.
ellauri037.html on line 713: Se oli välskärin poika, viisi siskoa (1 isosisko) Ludwigsburgista Württembergissä. Freudillakin oli liuta siskoja, kuin myös Pikku-Masilla ja Imillä. Ei ollut koulussa kovin sotilaallinen. Pissi sänkyyn vielä 15-vuotiaana. Kaarlo Syvännöllä oli sama vika. Alotti oikista mut vaihto lääkixeen. Ihan samaa tekee herraspojat vielä tänäänkin. Sillon vaan ei ollut pyrkyreitä (siis pääsykokeita, oli toki strebereitä, ne ovat aina keskuudessamme kuten köyhät). Karkas lääkintäjoukoista ja pakeni Thüringeniin. Siellä Schopenhauerkin söi pikku makkaroita vähän myöhemmin. Tutustui Weimarissa Hansiin, siis Goetheen. Molemmat sai ylennyxen voneixi, porvariset streeberit, karkeakarvaiset dreeverit. Niinkuin meidän sukulainen salaneuvos Robert Örn. Ranskixet tykkäs Retusta, ottivat kunniaranskalaisexi. Tuntuu et enemmänkin pitäs sanoa, mut mitä?
ellauri037.html on line 806: Löschen die Zwietracht, die tobend entglüht,
ellauri038.html on line 61: Dieser Ratschlag ist wahrscheinlich der bekannteste Satz von Friedrich Nietzsche, und wird von misogynen Männern, die nie ein Buch von Friedrich Nietzsche gelesen haben, gerne zitiert. Dieser Satz, der etwas anders in Nietzsches "Also sprach Zarathustra" steht, ist Rollenprosa, drückt also nicht die Meinung des Autors aus, sondern die einer Figur in einer Dichtung, hier die einer alten Frau (einem "alten Weiblein"), die Zarathustras Gedanken über Frauen lobt und am Ende ihres Treffens ihm noch den Ratschlag mit auf den Weg gibt.
ellauri038.html on line 145: Nietzsche wrote to Jacob Burckhardt in January 1889:
ellauri038.html on line 212: In 1914, World War I broke out. While Max busied himself publishing his multi-volume study of religion, lecturing, organizing military hospitals, serving as an adviser in peace negotiations and running for office in the new Weimar Republic, Marianne published many works, among which were: "The New Woman" (1914), "The Ideal of Marriage" (1914), "War as an Ethical Problem" (1916), "Changing Types of University Women" (1917), "The Forces Shaping Sexual Life" (1919) and "Women's Special Cultural Tasks" (1919).
ellauri038.html on line 289: No sen nyt ainakin et julkkixuudella ja kusipäisyydellä on vahva positiivinen korrelaatio. Se et tyyppi pääse kiekumaan jossain koivun latvassa todistaa vaan, et se on onnistunut tyrkkimään jotkut muut pois vihreältä oxalta, kilpailevat linnunpojat ulos käenpesästä. Eli jos joku on suuri nimi tai julkkis niin sillon sitä on peukuttaneet a) muut kyynärpäilyssä onnistuneet kusipäät b) kasan päälle pyrkivät wannabe paskiaiset ja snobit tai c) helevetin tyhmä laahus joka juoksee perässä kun se näkee kohdat a) ja b).
ellauri039.html on line 351: Hatsipompponen’s artistic development is threaded with a series of performance works that are inspired by autobiographical events and social issues. Benevolence evoked an inner quietness with extremely slow and repetitive motions, questioning the exponential acceleration of our contemporary lives. MISEMONO: SIDESHOW dealt with cultural stereotypes and racial issues. Ritual for RED was a re-enactment of the lost memories suffered from a severe auto accident. "My work in execution and establishment communicates both the solid fact and the ephemerality of life."
ellauri039.html on line 384: "The process of making paper by hand allows me to be humble," according to Hatsipompponen's faculty profile. "As plant fiber, its beauty must be generated from nature. Our hands have brought paper into being. In paper resides a communion of nature and humanity." She wants to reveal a significant female job throughout the entire existence of papermaking. She thinks blank paper makes a Powerful Statement, as do stone and scissors.
ellauri039.html on line 411: The result of the discussions should yield clues about how Germans feel about their relationship to the FRG or the GDR as a state and the existence of a German nation. The ultimate task is to define, or at least to describe, the problem of German identity and the possible individual solutions.
ellauri039.html on line 629: menestyvätkin muut elävät: loiset, mikrobit, viruxet.
ellauri039.html on line 698: tunnelmoida enää haudoilla, ajella räyhämobiililla
ellauri039.html on line 726: Camus´n tunnetuimpia teoksia ovat Sivullinen (1942), Rutto (1948) ja Kapinoiva ihminen (1953). Hän sai Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon vuonna 1957. Hän oli Rudyard Kiplingin jälkeen nuorin palkinnon vastaanottaja. Right on!
ellauri039.html on line 751: Niinkuin ruttobasillit, rotat ja lepakot. Ja siilit.
ellauri039.html on line 752: Ruttobasilli ei kuole milloinkaan. Koronavirus vielä vähemmän,
ellauri039.html on line 768: Edward Morgan Forster OM CH (1 January 1879 – 7 June 1970) was an English novelist, short story writer, essayist and librettist. Many of his novels examine class difference and hypocrisy, including A Room with a View (1908), Howards End (1910) and A Passage to India (1924). The last brought him his greatest success. He was nominated for the Nobel Prize in Literature in 16 different years.
ellauri039.html on line 774: John Galsworthy OM (/ˈɡɔːlzwɜːrði/; 14 August 1867 – 31 January 1933) was an English novelist and playwright. Notable works include The Forsyte Saga (1906–1921) and its sequels, A Modern Comedy and End of the Chapter. He won the Nobel Prize in Literature in 1932.
ellauri039.html on line 776: The Forsyte Saga, first published under that title in 1922, is a series of three novels and two interludes published between 1906 and 1921 by Nobel Prize–winning English author John Galsworthy. They chronicle the vicissitudes of the leading members of a large, upper-middle-class English family, similar to Galsworthy´s family. Only a few generations removed from their farmer ancestors, the family members are keenly aware of their status as "new money". The main character, Soames Forsyte, sees himself as a "man of property" by virtue of his ability to accumulate material possessions – but this does not succeed in bringing him pleasure.
ellauri040.html on line 137: ob">Leibniz sanoi Piikikästä kerettiläisexi juutalaisexi. Naulan kantaan osasi. Osasi myös nuolla ruhtinaiden perseitä oikeasta kohdasta. Leibniz neuvoi morsiamia: ei pidä lakata peseytymästä vaikka pääsee naimisiin. Napoleon olis ollut tosi pettynyt jos Josephine ois noudattanut sakemannin neuvoa. Siisteysintoilevat alemannit, je m´en fous. Nää puhtausjutut usein askarruttaa filosoofeja ja muita uskontopellejä. Se on anaalista, kuten Freud ja Jyrki yhteen ääneen toteaa. Mut hygienialla torjutaan kulkutauteja, six anaalisuus kuuluu keskeisesti meeminikkareiden toimenkuvaan.
ellauri040.html on line 262: Onhan tässäkin tulkinnan varaa, esim. jos Wilho oli vaurasta kauppiassukua, joutuu sitten mierolle, ja päätyy oman uskonlahkon paimenex, jonka hautajaisissa on puolentuhatta ihmisistä, onko se laskukas, nousukas, vai ensin toista sitten toista? No, ante obitum nemo supremaque funera felix, eli verrataan vaan synnyin- ja kuolinmökkejä. Olihan Eira sentään hyvä osoite Sysmän puustellin loistoaikoihinkin verrattuna. Toinen on nyt öky yxityispalazi, toinen lanattu urheilukentäxi. Ja nythän on Wilho taivaassa, sen pitemmälle ei voi kukaan pötkiä, ei edes jumala. Heka Tikkanen oli loppupeleissä täys spuge, muttei sentään katuojassa, luottotiedot oli kunnossa. Raja märsyrin ja puolikuivurin välillä on horjuva, niinkuin se oli käytännössä esimerkixi Läiskillä. Joskus Läiski, jotkut Läitki. Muistisääntö: oikixuudesta, uskonnosta ja optimismista saa kuivuripisteitä, vasixuudesta, ateismista ja pessimismistä märkyribojoja.
ellauri040.html on line 285: Tuurilla ei ole dialogia, vaan Richardsonin tyylistä oratio obliquaa: Paavo sanoi että... Äiti hämmästeli että... Veikko totesi että... Näiden johtoverbien luetteloa on kasvattaneet lehdistönkin tyhjäntoimittajat tyyliin hymyili rouva Hagert, Taisto Tammen mummo. Nää kirjat on kuin Deleuzen ja Guattarin pilkkaamia juuriharjoja. Epäsuoran esityxen moduxia hinkattiin latinantunneilla. Suomessa se on helppoa: aina mennään indikatiivilla.
ellauri040.html on line 327: The generation born completely within the technological age, war on terror, and multiculturalism. This generation is the first true global culture as their characteristics and trend is more uniform across the globe as they become the most open minded generation to date.
ellauri040.html on line 331: Comparable to grandparents Silent Generations and parents, Generation X. As of 2010 however, Generation Z culture are rising, they are predicted to be more cautious, more conservative and connected than ever with everyone around the globe.
ellauri040.html on line 333: More recently metamodernism, post-postmodernism and the "death of postmodernism" have been widely debated: in 2007 Andrew Hoberek noted in his introduction to a special issue of the journal Twentieth Century Literature titled "After Postmodernism" that "declarations of postmodernism's demise have become a critical commonplace". A small group of critics has put forth a range of theories that aim to describe culture or society in the alleged aftermath of postmodernism, most notably Raoul Eshelman (performatism), Gilles Lipovetsky (hypermodernity), Nicolas Bourriaud (altermodern), and Alan Kirby (digimodernism, formerly called pseudo-modernism). None of these new theories or labels have so far gained very widespread acceptance. Sociocultural anthropologist Nina Müller-Schwarze offers neostructuralism as a possible direction.
ellauri040.html on line 335: Criticisms of postmodernism are intellectually diverse, and include assertions that postmodernism promotes obscurantism, is meaningless, and that it adds nothing to analytical or empirical knowledge.
ellauri040.html on line 346: Z-sukupolvi ei edes naura niille, kazoo vaan huuli pyöreenä. What seems to be the problem, officer? Kirjasta on tullut videon kässäri, jota kuunnellaan autossa äänikirjana kuvan puutteessa. Kuha autot alkaa ajaa ize, ei senkään vertaa tarvita.
ellauri040.html on line 499: Hoblassa ja tunnetusti vulgäärissä Herliinin sanomissa.
ellauri040.html on line 500: Ei liene sattuma, että Hoblan arvostelija on nainen ja Hesarissa
ellauri040.html on line 581: Polakoita on mulla suhteellisen vähän vielä. Onhan mulla se yx naisrunoilija nobelisti, ja Conradkin oli polakki. Vielä 1 mun lemppari on Singer. Se oli kyllä mamu, mut niin oli myös Mikkijeevits, joka poissaolevana Pariisissa kirjoitti Pan Tadeuxen. Puola on jaettu niin usein ja johto vaihdettu, että niille on varmalla ihan herrassa kenenkä maassa ne aamuisin herää. Six kai ne on niin isänmaallisia, sellaisia ovat maattomat. Winterin staka suomensi puolalaisia, suomensikohan se Tadeuxenkin? Mun lähde on Vaakku-setä. Siitä lähti tämä paasaus Taddeuxesta. Winterin lelukaupasta mä sain muita leluja mutten jääkiekkomailaa. Tuskin oli toivelistan kärjessä.
ellauri040.html on line 585: Pan Tadeusz (full title: Master Thaddeus, or the Last Foray in Lithuania: A Nobility´s Tale of the Years 1811–1812, in Twelve Books of Verse) is an epic poem by the Polish poet, writer, translator and philosopher Adam Mickiewicz. The book, written in Polish alexandrines, was first published on 28 June 1834 in Paris. It is deemed [by whom? citation needed] the last great epic poem in European literature.
ellauri040.html on line 589: Sir Thaddeus (in Polish Pan Tadeusz, czyli ostatni zajazd na Litwie. Historia szlachecka z roku 1811 i 1812 we dwunastu księgach wierszem) is a long poem with an even longer name by Lithuanian romantic poet Adam Mickiewicz. It is regarded as a Polish national epic. It was first published in Paris in 1834. The poet was then in exile in France. Sir Thaddeus is a story of a conflict between two noble families, the Soplicas and the Horeszkos. The time is 1811 and 1812, shortly before Napoleon invaded Russia. When attacked by Russian soldiers, both families fought against the enemy. When not, they fought each other. The conflict between the families was ended with the marriage of Thaddeus Soplica and Sophia Horeszko.
ellauri040.html on line 595: Kto cię stracił. Dziś piękność twą w całej ozdobie
ellauri040.html on line 596: Widzę i opisuję, bo tęsknię po tobie.
ellauri041.html on line 175: Kyrvänpään poistoblues
ellauri041.html on line 227: mielestä postpostmodernistimiehillä on probleemeja palleissa
ellauri041.html on line 238: ois kiva pokata se noobeli ja potkia muita kirjailijoita palkintopalleihin.
ellauri041.html on line 262: Calvinoa 80-luvulla jo ahisti globalisaation aikaansaama yhtenäiskulttuuri ja kivettyneet kaupallisen viihdetehtailun monokultturiset genret, missä et voi kuin loxahtaa johkin etukäteen määrätyistä tarinoista, tai lukijat / kazojat pettyvät. Kun valkkaat netflixistä jonkun pätkän, pikku ai-robotit tunnistaa sun taipumuxet ja suosittelee nippua lähes vastaavia kokemuxia. Toimii kuin junan vessa.
ellauri041.html on line 621: Sobald der Fischer Abschied nahm,
ellauri041.html on line 643: Denn dieses Mädchen, ob es gleich
ellauri041.html on line 773: Von Hoffnungsflügeln sanft gehoben
ellauri041.html on line 774: Schwebt er treppauf und fliegt nach oben.
ellauri041.html on line 895: Die rechte sieht man sanft erhoben
ellauri041.html on line 897: So kommt die Königinn von oben...
ellauri041.html on line 955: Schwebte nach oben und verschwand.
ellauri041.html on line 1086: Dominus vobiscum über das Dieder
ellauri041.html on line 1150: teki Dominus vobiscum merkin tissiin,
ellauri041.html on line 1523: Und greift den Esel alsobald
ellauri041.html on line 1543: Der Bär, obschon ganz krumm u. matt,
ellauri041.html on line 1750: Die Rechte sieht man sanft erhoben
ellauri041.html on line 1752: So steht sie da, von Glanz umwoben.
ellauri041.html on line 1922: Sitä käytti joku säälittävä Jaakkoon takertunut romanialainen filosofi ammoin artikkelin nimenä. Se artikkeli oli printattu dot matrix printterillä ja monistettu spriimonistuskoneella. Säälittävää. En tunnistanut kirjallista viitettä enkä muutenkaan ymmärtänyt paperista tuon taivaallista. Varmaan se oli ihan mobutu seko seko.
ellauri041.html on line 1931: Parasta täältä kotikazomosta kazoen on koko homman painajaismainen todentuntu. Paljon hullumpia konnailuja kuin tässä on luettavissa joka päivä lehdestä. Tää on pimeää komediaa, sapekasta naurua, pahaa unta josta ei voi herätä kuin vielä pimeämpään tragediaan todellisuuden kuhmuisessa pakastimessa. Hyvää on myös neandertalimainen perhetiimimeisinki (geenit sakeampia kuin meemit), uskottavan masentava laskukkuus, suora ja epäsuora vittuilu vittumaiselle kapitalistimenolle, ja kristillinen tasoitushenki: rikkaat on paskiaisia ja köyhät hyviä. Näin on meidankin elamassamme. Kusipää isä pannaan pakastimeen, röyhkeät naapurit karkotetaan vittuun sadettajalla. Jokainen saa olla vuorollan oman perheen antisankari, kukaan ei ole seppo. Varastetaan rikkailta ja annetaan köyhille kuin robbari. Ja nauraa rähätetään vielä päälle.
ellauri041.html on line 1943: Suspension of belief in what? Capitalism obviously. Americans find that harder than to believe in god, superman, me, "it", Harry Potter, Trump, and Game of Thrones. Big cars, cheap gas by the gallon, soft suspension. Well now oil can be had by the asking. Selling oil costs money now, as does saving money in the bank. Deflation comes, are you ready?
ellauri041.html on line 1955: Mutta mitä vittua on palvelutalous? Mitä siinä muka tuotetaan? Kuluttajapalveluja? Kun on saatu syötävää, nussittu vähän ja tapeltu, sitten voidaan alkaa kuusen alla leikkiä. Muovikuusen alla mobiili kädessä, muuta ei enää kohta ole tarjolla. Siinäkin kulutetaan luontoa, mutta ennen kaikkea apinoiden aika saadaan kulumaan. Ja silä varjolla jaetaan perustuotannon ylimäärästä perustuottamattomille syötävää. Maxetaan hauskutuxesta. Olihan niitä narreja ja pellejä aikaisemmissakin tuotantotavoissa, musikantteja ja kylähulluja.
ellauri041.html on line 1972: Niinkuin esimerkixi tviittaileva Yhdysvaltain presidentti Donald Trump, aivan kuolaavan lobotomin tasoa, tai Herlinin Sanomat, joka julkaisee puolen sivun haastattelun jostain MAGA-lippalakkisesta aivokääpiöstä Johns Hopkinsin yliopistosta. Samassa propagandasarjassa, jossa hiljan haastateltiin toista kärpässarjan ajattelijaa, ranskalaista suklaalevyä. Pietu Hein sanoi yhdessä gruukissa, että vaarallisimpia idiooteista on ne jotka on suhteellisen intelligenttejä. Siis eivät ihan lintulautaluokan goggledygookeja, niinkuin enemmistö amerikkalaisista, ja HS:n toimittajista. Sellaisia vaarallisia on Herlinin sanomien omistajat, jotka palkkaavat lehteen näitä hyödyllisiä idiootteja. Paavo Haavikkoa lainataxeni, ne on joko hulluja tai pahoja, tai molempia. Veikkaan molempia.
ellauri042.html on line 197: näiden kakkapellejen ympäristöstä. Muut elukat on saaneet väistyä, kun mikrobit
ellauri042.html on line 502: The youngest son narrates the tale. He, his brothers, and his mother are all sympathetic characters, relatively normal people, though each has their own beliefs, quirks, and problems. The failure of my-way-or-the-highway Dad to show respect or even empathy for those who disagree drives the story. He could have been portrayed as an easy person to hate, but even with his limitations, it's obvious he is still trying to do good. To that extent, this film succeeds.
ellauri042.html on line 504: Vignettes are usually less than totally satisfying, lacking resolutions commensurate with their conflicts. But this story, despite its interesting situation and fine production, feels emptier than most, because the resolution is largely driven not by action but by happenstance. Since Word of God is an autobiographical piece, I can't argue with what it shows, but the result seems to lack impact or message.
ellauri042.html on line 549: "Viruxella ei ole mitään viestiä."
Asia on tismalleen päinvastoin, virus on pelkkää viestiä, RNAhan koodattua. Corona on toivottavasti osa isompaa luonnon viestiä, nimittäin että tällästen talousliberaalien globalistien aika alkaa olla ohize. Levy kuumenee, kohta beehoo saa niellä annoxen pandemoniumin pikalevyllä kuumennettua populistimyrkkyä.
ellauri042.html on line 576: Harold Pinter käytti muutamia Sacksin tapauskertomuksia näytelmässään A Kind of Alaska, ja vuonna 1990 Sacksin kertomusten pohjalta tehtiin elokuva Awakenings (suomeksi Heräämisiä), jossa Robin Williams ja Robert de Niro olivat pääosissa. Elokuva teki Sacksista maailmankuulun.
ellauri042.html on line 648: The plot of the poem is simple. Dulness, the goddess, appears at a Lord Mayor's Day in 1724 and notes that her king, Elkannah Settle, has died. She chooses Lewis Theobald as his successor. In honour of his coronation, she holds heroic games. He is then transported to the Temple of Dulness, where he has visions of the future. The poem has a consistent setting and time, as well. Book I covers the night after the Lord Mayor's Day, Book II the morning to dusk, and Book III the darkest night. Furthermore, the poem begins at the end of the Lord Mayor's procession, goes in Book II to the Strand, then to Fleet Street (where booksellers were), down by Bridewell Prison to the Fleet ditch, then to Ludgate at the end of Book II; in Book III, Dulness goes through Ludgate to the City of London to her temple.
ellauri042.html on line 690: Elävän leskestä tuli leipäsusi kunnes susikoira kellahti. Gibson oli sellainen koira joka jokaisen kirjailijattaren pitäisi valita. Ei todellakaan mikään komendantti. Oktogenaari taitaa olla vähän jo liian senior fellow ehtiäxeen saada noobelin. Ja liian feministi, tollanen niinko riitasa. Ei sellaisesta Ruozin Akatemiassa pidetä. Sitäpaizi Alice Munrohan juuri palkittiin, kanadalaiset naiset on syöneet jäätelönsä.
ellauri042.html on line 695: Fedor M. Dostoevsky´s family had old-Lithuanian aristocratic origins. The name was derived from the Russian word dostoijny, which means dignified. What a misnomer. Fyodor Mikhailovich Dostoevsky was born on October 30th, 1821 (old Julian calendar; on November 11th, 1821 according to the Gregorian calculation) in Moscow, as the second son of Mikhail Andreevich Dostoevsky, a doctor at the hospital for the poor.
ellauri042.html on line 697: Dostoevsky´s literary work has strong autobiographical elements. We know from him that he suffered from hallucinations already in early childhood. He presented idiotic characters with confused views about freedom of choice, religion, socialism, atheism, good and evil. Many of his characters suffered – like the author himself – from epilepsy. Other famous people also suffered from epilepsy (Alexander the Great, Caesar, Gustave Flaubert, and Lord Byron). Flaubert had religiously tinted visions. The first 2 guys thought they were gods.
ellauri042.html on line 701: In 1833, the family moved to Tula where the father bought a manor. Shortly after the death of his mother in 1837, Fyodor (16 yrs) was sent to St. Petersburg where he entered the Army Engineering College. 2 years later, in 1839, Dostoevsky´s more and more tyrannical father died, probably of apoplexy, but there were strong rumours that he was murdered by his own serfs in a quarrel. (Unless it was Fedja who dunit.) Against the background of this legend, Sigmund Freud later interpreted the patricide in the novel “The brothers Karamazov” as showing Fedja hated his father´s guts. True, but the main thing was the epilepsy, wait and see.
ellauri042.html on line 710: Furthermore, his first wife, who was something of an impulse purchase, suffered from tuberculosis, so he had an impassionate affair with a young woman called Apollinaria Suslova on the side. It ended tragically due to his obsession with gambling. Beside of these blows he suffered from frequent epileptic seizures. At the bedside of his sick wife he wrote “Notes from Underground” (1864), a psychological study of an outsider. The work starts with a confession by the writer: “I am a sick man … I am a wicked man …” Fair enough.
ellauri042.html on line 719: Dostoevsky´s favorite word was “vdrug” (“suddenly”). A lot of events in Dostoevsky´s novels begin suddenly, without preparations and explanation – like seizures. (But he did at times have a manic aura just before.) Dostoevsky also used frequent repetitions of the same word with different intonations. It made an impression of convulsions and shocked the literary critics. He wrote in a meticulous manner, using every empty space of a sheet (see Fig. 2). His style showed a tendency toward extensive and in some cases compulsive writing, and the writings were often concerned with moral, ethical, or religious issues. This may reflect a syndrome of interictal behavior changes that was described in temporal lobe epilepsy by Waxman and Geschwind.
ellauri042.html on line 726: Interictal (kohtausten välinen) behaviour abnormalities in temporal lobe epilepsy have been discussed by many authors. There is clear evidence of a temporal lobe epilepsy personality syndrome including a deepening of emotionality with a serious, highly ethical, and spiritual demeanour and an interictal dysphoric disorder.
ellauri042.html on line 728: Bear and Fedio described typical interictal findings in patients with temporal lobe epilepsy including hyperreligiosity, euphoria, depression, hypergraphy, hypo- or hypermoralism, interest in philosophical questions, altered sexual behaviour, paranoia, consciousness of guilt, and emotional alteration.
ellauri042.html on line 730: There is no doubt that Dostoevsky´s writing witnesses a large awareness of and sometimes even obsession with religious, philosophical and emotional questions as well as question of guilt. Myshkin from the novel “The Idiot” shared many character traits with his creator, such as russophilia, hyperreligiosity with profound belief in the Russian-orthodox church, melancholy, auras of happiness, generalized seizures. Furthermore, Dostoevsky wrote in large letters, and his style was sometimes compulsive and abrupt.
ellauri042.html on line 732: In conclusion, the exact classification of Dostoevsky´s idiocy is pretty clear. Many signs indicate that this famous writer suffered from mesial temporal lobe epilepsy.
ellauri042.html on line 804: Euclid’s fifth proposition in the first book of his Elements (that the base angles in an isosceles triangle are equal) may have been named the Bridge of Asses (Latin: Pons Asinorum) for medieval students who, clearly not destined to cross over into more abstract mathematics, had difficulty understanding the proof—or even the need for the proof. An alternative name for this famous theorem was Elefuga, which Roger Bacon, writing circa ad 1250, derived from Greek words indicating “escape from misery.” Medieval schoolboys did not usually go beyond the Bridge of Asses, which thus marked their last obstruction before liberation from the Elements.
ellauri042.html on line 813: In the meantime Ollie had published not one but two memoirs, with an exhaustive range of anecdotes, full of enchantment and anguish, covering everything from his all-consuming childhood obsession with the properties of metals to the abuse he endured at boarding school to his feeling, amphibian-like, more at home in water than on land to his mother’s reaction when she discovered his sexual orientation. “You are an abomination,” Ollie recounted her telling him when he was 18. “I wish you had never been born.” Nor had Ollie kept anything hidden. He described his first orgasm — reached spontaneously while floating in a swimming pool — and, in deft yet fairly pornographic detail, an agonized, inadvertent climax experienced much later while giving a massage to a man who shunned Ollie’s love.
ellauri042.html on line 819: Olli näki sexiunia sammakkoeläimistä. Sen isoveli oli huonosti hoidettu skizofreenikko. Olli oli vitun kova narsisti. Jätti Boswellin pois autobiosta "because there just wasn´t room".
ellauri043.html on line 372:
Varmasti ei ole ketään jolla on näin paljon ressiä! Helläsydämisiä on vähemmän. Mulle ei tuoda enää mitään. Mun palttoo on nyölääntynyt. Mulla ei ole sandaaleja, ei edes puurokuppia! - sillä mä annoin köyhille sukulaisille kaikki rahani, jättämättä oboliakaan. Jotta saisin edes välttämättömiä työkaluja, tarvizisin vähän fyrkkaa. Oi, ei paljoa! Pikku summa vaan! Bussiraha kotia. Osaan pihistellä.
Erilaista arkkitehtuuria on pakattuna vieri viereen. Egyptiläiset obeliskit nousevat kreikkalaisten temppelien ylle. Obeliskit näyttävät peiziltä punatiilistä rakennettujen puolustusmuurien keskellä. Aukioiden keskellä on pystykorvaisia Hermexen pazaita ja koiranpäisiä Anubixia. A. näkee mosaiikkeja pihoilla, ja kattoparruilla ripustetuja mattoja.
ellauri043.html on line 633:
ellauri043.html on line 1203: Ei meillä ole muuta ansiota kuin totuudenjano. Uskonto yxin ei selitä kaikkea; ja ratkaisemalla sun ignoreeraamat probleemat voitas tehdä uskonnostakin vastustuskykysempää ja sofistikoidumpaa. Mut siis sillon pitää pelastuaxeen viestittää veljien kaa - tai kirkon, eli uskollisten kokouxen, sama mix sitä nimittää - ja kuunnella kaikkia selityxiä, ei halvexia mitään, ei ketään. Velho Balaam, (Numbers 22:5), runoilija Aiskhylos, ja Kymen sibylla ennustivat pelastajaa. Dionysios Alexandrialainen sai taivaasta ukaasin lukea kaikki kirjat. Pyhä Klemens käskee meitä kultivoimaan kreikan kirjallisuutta. Hermas kääntyi yhden naisen tempusta joka rakasti sitä.
ellauri043.html on line 3200: Me tavattiin merenrannalla maitoa täynnä olevia koirankuonolaisia (tai haita), jotka oli palaamassa retkeltä Taprobnen saarelle. Lämpimät aallot työnsivät eteemme vaaleita helmiä. Ambra raxahteli jaloissa. Valaiden luurankoja vaaleni rantakallioiden lomassa. Maan ääressä maa kapeni kapeammaxi kuin sandaali; — ja heitettyämme aurinkoa kohti valtameren pisaroita teimme käännöxen oikeaan päin palataxemme takaisin.
It’s an America that probably no longer exists.
In fact it never did, it's just propaganda.
ellauri046.html on line 599: De stærke jyder havde rødder i både den lutherske ortodoksi og den danske pietisme. Dette blev kaldt for dobbelt oprindelse. Bevægelsen blev i løbet af tiden kritiseret af både herrnhuterne i Christiansfeld, som mente, at de ikke var inderlige og glade nok, og af grundtvigianerne, som fandt dem for snævre. De stærke jyder blev med tiden en del af Indre Mission.
ellauri046.html on line 608: Mieluummin baade og. Tentten on tollanen you can't have both kurinpitäjä kuin Naipaulin isä, tai Luutarha senior. Anaalis-obsessiivinen pyllynreikä.
ellauri046.html on line 645: Entten-Sören kuulostaa Nietschen Retulta. Tai Timon Airaxiselta. Aviolliset on dum dyrisk tillfreds, se ize on erobernde Natur. Tätä tais olla tohon aikaan ilmassa. Toihan oli puhasta E.Saarista, keskustaoikeistolaista optimismia, braunen Bataillionen-aatetta. Aikamme on samalla kertaa liian kevytmielistä ja liian raskasmielistä. Es schaut auf Hakenkreuz voll Hoffnung schon Millionen, die Knechtschaft dauert nur noch kurze Zeit! Die Fahne hoch, die Reihen fest geschlossen!
ellauri046.html on line 676: Saladin agreed to confirm an inviolate peace between Christians and Saracens, guaranteeing for both free passage and access to the Holy Sepulcher of the Lord without the exaction of any tribute and with the freedom of bringing objects for sale through any land whatever and of exercising a free commerce.
ellauri046.html on line 688: Jos yhteen ägtenskabiin ei mitenkään mahdu kaikki setämiehen kjärlighedit, Christendomme ei voi olla kehityxen viimeinen sana. Tästä epäkohdasta lähtee liikenteeseen iso osa setämieslyriikasta ja proosasta, esim. tämä nide. Kummasti homopetteriltä riittää naisista mielipiteitä, mut onhan niitä Suomen Perustan homo-Hankasalmellakin. Niillä tienaa paremmin kuin homobaarikokemuxilla.
ellauri046.html on line 799: Which throbs with delight to the first kiss of love.
ellauri046.html on line 838:
Both the poem and its singsong metre have been frequent objects of parody.
ellauri052.html on line 319: Like other successful duos, such as Batman & Robin, Mickey & Goofy, or Laurel & Hardy, Wordsworth and Coleridge were temperamentally dissimilar. Wordsworth, reserved and thoughtful, wrote verse while plodding to and fro in the garden and, we are told, was subject to stomach trouble when revising. Coleridge was irresponsible and debt-ridden, but everywhere spoken of as a genius, if a volatile one. “I think too much for a Poet,” he said. His addiction to opium began early and was never conquered. In time, it became his only regular habit.
ellauri052.html on line 330: ... I think Mr Bellow is still a good-looking man. Slim but solid, with big Oriental eyes and probably a thick dick.
ellauri052.html on line 331: ... But Jacob Böhme was wrong, the outer is not the inner visible."
ellauri052.html on line 333: Jakob Böhme (1575 – 17. marraskuuta 1624, Görlitz, Saksa) oli saksalainen mystikko, teosofi ja luonnontieteilijä.
ellauri052.html on line 336: Jacob Böhme oli Pohjanmaan mystikoiden oppi-isä.
ellauri052.html on line 422: Taas tota vitun 8 sekunnin kultakalan keskittymiskykyä. Sen on Amerikan mainosteevee saanut aikaan. Sale ansaizee Nobel-palkinnon varoittavana esimerkkinä, mitä Amerikka tekee ryssän mamu juutalaisista. Sale diggas just noita samoja narsisheja kuin kaikki muutkin narsishit, Nietscheä Schopenhaueria Kierkegaardia. Kaskun ei mainize nazi Heideggeriä.
ellauri052.html on line 463: A number of foreign and medieval analogues exist that exhibit the motif ("Whittington's cat" motif, N411.2), where the hero obtains wealth by selling a cat, typically in a rodent-infested place direly in need of one. The tale is catalogued Aarne–Thompson (AT) tale type 1651, "Whittington's Cat".
ellauri052.html on line 466: tavote ihmiskunnalle: meediat ja globalisaatio.
ellauri052.html on line 553: Steiner 1861-1925 oli itävaltalainen, Kroatiasta Wieniin muuttaneita. Nazit väitti sitä jutkuxi, heitti hajupommeja. Iskä yleni riistanvartijasta sähköttäjäxi. Rudi oli aika sekobolzi jo koululaisena. Suxet meni ristiin opejen kaa, koulut jäivät kesken, kunnes 30-vuotiaana teki yxityisoppilaana väitöskirjan Fichten egosta toiselle yhtä sekobolzille Rostockin yliopistoon arvosanalla välttävä.
ellauri052.html on line 567: The split became irrevocable when Annie Besant, then president of the Theosophical Society, presented the child Jiddu Krishnamurti as the reincarnated Christ. Steiner strongly objected and considered any comparison between Krishnamurti and Christ to be nonsense; many years later, Krishnamurti also repudiated the assertion.
Jiddo's father lost a lawsuit trying to regain custody of his son. His Lawsuit accused Leadbeater, who was probably gay, of having had sexual relations with Jiddo.
William Butler Yeats (13. kesäkuuta 1865 Sandymount, Irlanti – 28. tammikuuta 1939 Menton, Ranska) oli irlantilainen runoilija. Yeats oli merkittävä voima perinteisen irlantilaisen kulttuurin elvyttämisessä ja yksi Irlannin kansallisteatterin perustajista. Yeats sai Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon vuonna 1923.
From 1900, his poetry grew more physical and realistic. He largely renounced the transcendental beliefs of his youth, though he remained preoccupied with physical and spiritual masks, as well as with cyclical theories of life. In 1923, he was awarded the Nobel Prize in Literature.
In 1997, his biographer R. F. Foster observed that Napoleon's dictum that to understand the man you have to know what was happening in the world when he was twenty "is manifestly true of W.B.Y."
In After Strange Gods—the Page-Barbour Lectures that Eliot delivered at the University of Virginia in 1933— Tommy referred to Pound as “probably the most important living poet in our language” and to Yeats as “the other important poet of our time,” while subjecting both poets to rebuke.
ellauri053.html on line 1193: Helppoa: se oli mustankipeä. Tomppa ja Jästi were associates from time to time but not companions. Yeats and Pound make a different relation: they were friends and remained friends, especially after the three winters they spent in Stone Cottage, Coleman’s Hatch, Sussex. The friendship continued over the years and found fulfillment in a shared Rapallo.
Dobby ja Jästi ilosteli Rapallon mökissä veturinkuljettajana ja lämmittäjänä, kuraverinen Tomppa palloili kateena ulkopuolella.
ellauri053.html on line 1203:
ellauri053.html on line 1205: Mitä oli tarjolla Tylsän riikinkukkopäivällisillä Sussexissa 1914? Mitähän. Veikkaan että suusexiä. Dobby ja Jästi oli kuzuttu, missä luuraa Tomppa? No se oli 25 ja vasta muuttamassa jenkeistä. Se oli hädin tuskin kuoriutunut munasta. Jästi on eri nenäkkään näköinen. Sillä on mirri kaulassa kuin Armas Salosella, muttei sentään nenäliinaa päässä.
ellauri053.html on line 1357:
ellauri053.html on line 1370: By 1916, Yeats was 51 years old and determined to marry and produce an heir. His rival John MacBride had been executed for his role in the 1916 Easter Rising, so Yeats hoped that his widow might remarry. His final proposal to Maud Gonne took place in mid-1916. Gonne's history of revolutionary political activism, as well as a series of personal catastrophes in the previous few years of her life—including chloroform addiction and her troubled marriage to MacBride—not to mention that she was 50—made her a potentially unsuitable wife; biographer R. F. Foster has observed that Yeats's last offer was motivated more by a sense of duty than by a genuine desire to marry her.
ellauri053.html on line 1375: That September, Yeats proposed to 25-year-old Georgie Hyde-Lees (1892–1968), known as George, whom he had met through Olivia Shakespear. Despite warnings from her friends—"George ... you can't. He must be dead"—Hyde-Lees accepted, and the two were married on 20 October. Their marriage was a success, in spite of the age difference, and in spite of Yeats's feelings of remorse and regret during their honeymoon. The couple went on to have two children, Anne and Michael. Although in later years he had romantic relationships with other women, Georgie herself wrote to her husband "When you are dead, people will talk about your love affairs, but I shall say nothing, for I will remember how proud you were of them."
ellauri053.html on line 1379: In December 1923, Yeats was awarded the Nobel Prize in Literature, "for his always inspired poetry, which in a highly artistic form gives expression to the spirit of a whole nation". He was aware of the symbolic value of an Irish winner so soon after Ireland had gained independence, and sought to highlight the fact at each available opportunity. His reply to many of the letters of congratulations sent to him contained the words: "I consider that this honour has come to me less as an individual than as a representative of Irish literature, it is part of Europe's welcome to the Free State." Taas yxi tällänen taatatyyppinen poliittinen nobelisti.
ellauri054.html on line 101: The exhibits of this small museum consist mainly of text and information-panels. I found it informative but it also was similar to reading a informative-book displayed on the museum walls. I missed some artwork or historical objects.
ellauri054.html on line 120: Löysin Käpykylän kirjaston poistoblyysistä Hannu Riikosen respiittityön Mikä on essee? Que sais-je? 30 vuoden takaa. Oliko Hannu essessään saatuaan sen julki? Tai edes täpinöissään? No ei luulee eunukki, se on pikemminkin cool and dry. Kuin hyvin tuuletettu skafferi.
ellauri054.html on line 142: Viimeisexi vaan ei vähimmäxi jää porsaan kavalkaadissa kuinka ollakkaan Horatiuxen saarnat eli satiirit. Boethiuxen de consolatione philosophiae ois niinko viimonen tärkee essee ennen kun keskiaika pimenöö. Boethius keekoili Roomassa 500-luvulla matujen visigoottien mobbatessa loppuja roomalaisia ja murehti siitä johtuen teodikean ongelmaa. Ei ois kannattanut. Se päätyy siihen et turpiinsaanti on sekä ansaittua että kasvattavaa. Parasta myöntää että olet ruma kalkkuna. Myönnän. Kiitos. Kuten sanoi Söören: sulla on 2 vaihtoehtoa. Joko et nosta mun hattua maasta ja saat turpaasi. Tai nostat sen, ja saat silti turpaasi.
ellauri054.html on line 159: But above all, beleeve it, the sweetest Canticle is Nunc dimittis, when a Man hath obtained worthy Ends and Expectations. Death hath this also, That it openeth the Gate to good Fame, and extinguished Envie. Vanha Simo sanoi nyt päästät palvelijasi lepoon, nähtyään vihdoin Jeesus-lapsen synagoogassa. Jouti kuolemaan. No siitä samoinkuin Pekonista tuli vainajana kuuluisa. Kyllä käy kateexi. Lisää pekonin lurjustelusta albumissa 223.
ellauri054.html on line 169: Samanniminen irkku maalari Francis Bacon (28 October 1909 – 28 April 1992) ei käyttänyt hattua. Bacon did not begin to paint until his late twenties, having drifted in the late 1920s and early 1930s as an interior decorator, bon vivant, and gambler. Since his death, Bacon's reputation has grown steadily, and his work is among the most acclaimed, expensive and sought-after on the art market. Extinctus amabitur idem.
Niistettynä rakastetaan tätäkin. Oikeassa oli nimiserkku!
ellauri054.html on line 177: Addisonin On Change on kapitalismin ja globalisaation ylistys. Vitun britit. Vitun jenkit ja kermaperseet ruozalaiset. Mänkööt vuan kaikki lipilaarit huut helekkariin.
ellauri054.html on line 226: Hän kulutti aikansa kuljeskelemalla Italian ja Ranskan yliopistoissa luennoitsijoita nolaamassa, ärsyttäviä kysymyksiä tivaamassa ja parin opintopisteen kirjatenttejä suorittamassa. Vuonna 1484 Pico della Mirandola alkoi kyllästyä elämäntapaopiskelijan elämään. Häntä kiinnosti kokopäivätoimisen yleispätijän työ, ja Firenzessä oli siihen tuon ajan Italiassa parhaat mahdollisuudet. Innocentius VIII oli pelätty, ruma ja huumorintajuton ikibännien jakelija. Koska paavimobiilia ei ollut keksitty, liikkui hän Kirkkovaltiossa vierimällä harmaan ovaalin sisässä. Onnex Dick Tracyn näköinen Lorenzo de' Medici oli hyvin merkittävä Picon tukija. Ilman Lorenzon sponssausta Picon saavutukset olisivat tuhoutuneet tyystin.
ellauri054.html on line 423: The law needs to be structured in such a way that it allows a steady stream of new inmates. This ties back to that lobbying aspect: stricter laws mean more people in the system. More people in the system means more money for the prison. Many have argued that this is the entire reason that the war on drugs was started: another set of laws that could incarcerate thousands of people every single year.
ellauri054.html on line 475: Browning on myös viktoriaaninen runoilijapariskunta, Elizabeth Barrett ja Robert Browning. Joidenkin mielestä rouva oli parempi runoilija kuin pömpöösimpi miehensä. Mies pääsi rouvan hännän alta vasta tämän kuoltua. Eli vielä neljännesvuosisadan leskenä eikä mennyt uusiin naimisiin. Kerta riitti. Sitäpaizi on syytä epäillä että Roope oli koko ajan hieman peräreijän perään (kz. runoa Childe Roland albumissa 198).
ellauri054.html on line 481: Robert Browning believed spiritualism to be fraud, and proved one of Daniel Dunglas Home's most adamant critics. When Browning and his wife Elizabeth attended one of his séances on 23 July 1855, a spirit face materialized, which Home claimed was Browning's son who had died in infancy: Browning seized the "materialization" and discovered it to be Home's bare foot. To make the deception worse, Browning had never lost a son in infancy.
ellauri054.html on line 507: obert_Browning.jpg" width="50%" />
ellauri054.html on line 511: Robert Browning (7. toukokuuta 1812 – 12. joulukuuta 1889) oli brittiläinen runoilija, joka on erityisesti tunnettu dramaattisista monologeistaan kuten ”Porphyria’s Lover” ja ”My Last Duchess”. Browning on yksi tunnetuimmista viktoriaanisen ajan runoilijoista. Browning avioitui 1846 Elizabeth Barrettin kanssa, ja pari asui 1840-luvulta alkaen Firenzessä, Italiassa.
ellauri054.html on line 527: Browning´s early career began promisingly, but collapsed. The long poems Pauline (1833) and Paracelsus (1835) received some acclaim, but in 1840 the difficult Sordello, which was seen as wilfully obscure, brought his poetry into disrepute. His reputation took more than a decade to recover, during which time he moved away from the Shelleyan forms of his early period and developed a more personal style.
ellauri055.html on line 36: Rollen kamun Maxim Gorkin mielestä Maisteri Breugnon oli sen paras suoritus. Kolja Breugnon on kuin Obelix, sen kamu Paillard Asterix ja Chamaille Aladobix. Chamaille ja Breugnon on paxumahaisia köriläitä, vähän köykäsempiä kuin iso tynnöri. Maillard on pieni turilas, yhtä aikaa Koomoxen ja Moomoxen näköinen. Pani miettimään mitähän Rolle sillä tarkoitti.
ellauri055.html on line 76: In 1921, his close friend, the Austrian writer Stefan Zweig, published his biography (in English Romain Rolland: The Man and His Works). Zweig profoundly admired Rolland, whom he once described as "the moral consciousness of Europe" during the years of turmoil and War in Europe. Zweig wrote at length about his friendship with Rolland in his own autobiography (in English The World of Yesterday).
ellauri055.html on line 108: Selon la foi baha’ie, chaque homme a le devoir de reconnaître Dieu et ses manifestations, et de se conformer à leurs enseignements. À travers la reconnaissance et l’obéissance, le service aux autres êtres humains, la prière et la pratique spirituelle régulière, les baha’is croient que l’âme devient plus proche de Dieu, l’idéal spirituel dans la croyance baha’ie.
ellauri055.html on line 109: Il faut cependant noter que les décisions de la Maison Universelle de Justice, ainsi que les exégèses des écrits sacrés faites par ʿAbd-al-Bahāʾ et Shoghi Effendi, bénéficient d’une autorité s’imposant à tous les baha’is. Ce qui a conduit depuis les années 1980-1990 à ce que plusieurs intellectuels et universitaires, historiens ou sociologues, soient chassés de la communauté baha’ie pour leurs vues jugées divergentes sur des questions-clefs (l’exclusion des femmes de la Maison universelle de justice ; l’obligation de soumettre toute publication, même universitaire, à un comité de censure ; l’homosexualité ; un système électoral qui favorise les sortants ; l’interdiction de participer à un parti politique ou d’adhérer à une organisation comme Amnesty International, etc., et surtout le sujet central de l’infaillibilité des institutions).
ellauri055.html on line 119: réciter une prière obligatoire (ṣalāt) chaque jour après avoir atteint l’âge de la maturité spirituelle, qui est fixé à 15 ans. Il y a le choix entre trois prières;
ellauri055.html on line 297: Tiedämmehän, että mooabiittien kuninkaan Eglonin murhasi Eehud, Absalom tarttui päästään tammeen (Nej tamme fan!), ja hänen rintaansa pistettiin 3 keihästä, kuningas Naadabin, Jerobeamin pojan, surmasi Baesa, kuningas Eelan Simri, Ahasjan Jeehu, Ataljan Joojada, ja kuninkaat Joojakim von Ankka, Jekonja ja Sidkin olivat orjina...
ellauri055.html on line 390:
Le clan des snobinettes averties, sinon instruites par Chasteley poète et d'Héloé critique, commet avec Maeterlinck un "adultère spirituel". (p. 349 infra)
Below is the most plausible story we could come up with, to explain how Democrats accomplished the fraud, based on the available evidence. I have come to suspect that multiple conspiracies played out, possibly unaware of each other. But given the evidence we have obtained, the following story seems most plausible.
A relatively small team of perhaps 50 people or fewer was led by a smaller cadre which probably included several lawyers and most definitely included tech experts. The smaller cadre formed some time around the impeachment and carefully recruited point people over the course of the following months. Working like terror cells, they would need to keep point people unaware of who else was in on the conspiracy, to protect plausible deniability as much as possible. They had to have at least one conspirator in the elections offices of key swing states. It wouldn’t need to be a high-profile elected official, and would no doubt be better if it were some nameless person that few people noticed or would suspect.
Pulitzer board vetoed the jury´s recommendation, describing the novel as "unreadable", "turgid", "overwritten", and in parts "obscene".
The poem tells of a prank played on an apothecary by a band of university students called macaronea secta. It is written in a mix of Latin and Italian, in hexameter verse (as would befit a classical Latin poem). It reads as a satire of the bogus humanism and pedantism of doctors, scholars and bureaucrats of the time.
Merkuriuxelle pyhitetty valo on keskiviikko. Zobia on toskanalainen murresana torstaille (Giovedi).
Vastavoima kokoontuu, koittaen nitistää "Niiden" juonet. Se sisältää Merirosvo Oppisopimuxen, Katjen, Roger Mexikon, Obie Skrobauxen, Verisyylä Vahasiiven, ja muita. Roger Mexikon miälestä Poinzimies juoni häntä vastaan, jopa aiheuttaen Jessikan uudelleeosoituxen Cuxhaveniin, kauas Rogerista. Vastavoiman alkusamoilussa, Roger Mexiko virzaa kokouspöytään kokouxessa jota seuraa Poinzimies.
ellauri069.html on line 374: Moby-Dick—eepos, pelle-eepos, ja Suuri Amerikan Novelli—oli olevinaan vaikeasti luettava, ja onhan se. Sen pursuaa akromegaalisesti novellin kokoluokasta, sen esseemäiset harhailut valaanpyyntitieteessä jarruttaa juonen kehitystä koko valaan keskiruumiin matkalta, sen kaxsimielinen symbolismi on mahollista ja pakkokin tulkita jättimäisexi vertauskuvaxi jostakin (mistäkö? No kikkelistä taas, ks. mun Moby-paasaus.). Toisen kautta, Mobyssa ei ole yhtään kuvaa eikä tunnelmaa missä ei olisi suht selvä missä mennään kirjaimellisesti ottaen. Mobya voi olla vaikee tulkita, muttei vaikee lukea.
ellauri069.html on line 376: Thomas Pynchonin 1973 mestaripala Painomusteen Sadeviitta on eepos, pelle-eepos, ja Suuri Amerikan Novelli, kuten Moby-Dick. Toisinkuin Melvillen lukijat, kuiteskin, Pynchonin lukijat voi mennä sivukaupalla täysin pihalla siitä mitä juonessa, tilanteessa tai tyypeissä on tapahtumassa. Kirjaa ei edes voi kunnolla lukea selaamatta samalla koko ajan esim Steven Weisenburgerin Seuraneitiä ja Michael Davitt Bellin “Some Things That ‘Happen’ (More or Less) in Gravity’s Rainbow.”
ellauri069.html on line 387: Don’t forget the real business of the War is buying and selling. The murdering and violence are self-policing, and can be entrusted to non-professionals. The mass nature of wartime death is useful in many ways. It serves as spectacle, as diversion from the real movements of the War. It provides raw material to be recorded into History, so that children may be taught History as sequences of violence, battle after battle, and be more prepared for the adult world. Best of all, mass death’s a stimulus to just ordinary folks, little fellows, to try ‘n’ grab a piece of that Pie while they’re still here to gobble it up. The true war is a celebration of markets.
ellauri069.html on line 450: Hoblan komlunisti Grels Teir kiertää miesasiaa kuin kissa kuumaa puuroa. Sen tekis mieli sanoa että nyt top tykkänään ja respektiä miehille, muttei uskalla. Et me miehet ei saada osallistua #metoo keskusteluun meidän pitää vaan pitää turpa kii ja kuunnella. Se on uusi outo ja kiusallinen asia. Suutarixi jäi koko sarake.
ellauri069.html on line 470: Much of the book is about the difficulty of living in the ubiquitous shadow of immanent, instant destruction. How do you live a life with anything like normalcy, if you know that at any moment a V2 rocket you won't hear coming could make that moment your last? Some fall to nihilist "mindless pleasures" (the novel's working title); some play power games; some withdraw from the world; some remain willingly oblivious. Normalcy turns out not to be an option.
ellauri069.html on line 483: An article recently came out in the LA Times about Pynchon’s Great American Novel. The article begins by stating that Mason and Dixon is actually the most obvious candidate for the Great American Novel, and it instead suggests that Gravity’s Rainbow is perhaps the Great European Novel. The article then questions whether or not the Great American Novel even exists, and if it does if it is of a singular form or if it takes on many forms at once. After considering this question, the article finally claims that the Great American Novel is actually made up of all of Pynchon’s works fused together “into one epic Pynchoverse.” The Great American Novel certainly does not need to take place in America, but still many will argue that Gravity’s Rainbow by itself can never be considered as the Great American Novel because of its non-American setting and its wide array of characters. This is definitely debatable, but I do enjoy the idea of a “Pynchoverse” or a Pynchon Compilation being considered as the true Great American Novel. That being said, I do think most readers and Pynchonerds would undoubtedly say that Gravity's Rainbow is the Greatest Pynchon Novel.
ellauri069.html on line 491: My engineer nerd friends insisted that I should read Gravity's Rainbow, since it was rich with near-poetic observations about engineering and math. It was also rich with military history, jargon, and Pynchonian bong-hit digressions.
ellauri069.html on line 495: Recently, I got a subscription to Audible and picked up the George Guidall unabridged audiobook of this dense tome. Unabridged, the book took up 37 hours and 21 minutes. Over about 2 months of commutes and air travel, I finally “read” the book. And that will only be the FIRST reading. I probably absorbed maybe 25% of the meaning (generously) but at least got to hear the sections waxing poetic on calculus, aeronautical engineering, and the nature of creating things. There was also an unexpected amount of graphic sex and other wacky perversions, but I guess that was just a bonus.
ellauri069.html on line 515: Pynchonin Laika-koira Gottfried on anglosaxixi Geoffrey. Joffrey Lannister on ikävännäköinen ohuthuulinen psykopaatti teinikuningas Kuninkaan satamassa. Jeff Cobb oli Me Naisissa leveäleukainen rikosreportteri joka sanoi konnalle silmälappu silmillä: Sinä! Näpit irti mun puolustuskyvyttömästä vanhasta... Sitä ei pidä sekottaa paljon nuorempaan samannimiseen kaapinnäköiseen hawaijilaissyntyiseen vapaapainijaan. Eikä tätä erehdyttävästi muistuttavaan naispoliisivirkamies Tarja Mankkiseen, joka liezoo suomalaisten muutenkin rehottavaa xenofobiaa ihan viran puolesta.
ellauri069.html on line 520: obb.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri069.html on line 521: obb2.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri069.html on line 547: Die Versuchsstelle des Heeres Peenemünde (kurz: Heeresversuchsanstalt (HVA) Peenemünde, als solche HVP abgekürzt) war eine ab 1936 in Peenemünde-Ost errichtete Entwicklungs- und Versuchsstelle des Heeres, einer Teilstreitkraft der Wehrmacht. Unter dem Kommando von Walter Dornberger, seit Juli 1935 Chef der Raketenabteilung im Heereswaffenamt, und dem Technischen Leiter Wernher von Braun wurde in dem militärischen Sperrgebiet im Norden der Insel Usedom hauptsächlich die erste funktionsfähige Großrakete Aggregat 4 (A4, später in der NS-Propaganda „Vergeltungswaffe V2“ genannt) entwickelt und getestet. Mit ihrem ersten erfolgreichen Flug am 3. Oktober 1942 war die ballistische Rakete das erste von Menschen gebaute Objekt, das in den Grenzbereich zum Weltraum eindrang. Allgemein gilt Peenemünde daher als „Wiege der Raumfahrt“.
ellauri069.html on line 569:
on George Orwellin vuonna 1946 ilmestynyt kuuluisa essee, jossa hän arvosteli kielen käyttämistä poliittisen vaikuttamisen välineenä ja todellisuuden naamioimista kiertoilmaisuin. Mukavassari Orwellin kommarivihasta ja mukahetero Orwellin homofobiasta on ollut puhetta jo albumissa Eläinten vallankumous.
ellauri077.html on line 801: Toi essee on Jorin kommunistifoobista örwellystä. Kommunistipamflettia se ei voi edes lukea kun se on niin huonoa englantia, käännöstä jostain saxasta ranskasta tai venäjästä. Oikeistoveikko Örwell käyttää anglosaxonia lyömäaseena ajaaxeen kommunismin aaveen brexitmatkalle.
ellauri077.html on line 806: Pretentious diction. Words like phenomenon, element, individual (as noun), objective, categorical, effective, virtual, basic, primary, promote, constitute, exhibit, exploit, utilize, eliminate, liquidate, are used to dress up a simple statement and give an aire of scientific impartiality to biased judgements. Adjectives like epoch-making, epic, historic, unforgettable, triumphant, age-old, inevitable, inexorable, veritable, are used to dignify the sordid process of international politics, while writing that aims at glorifying war usually takes on an archaic color, its characteristic words being: realm, throne, chariot, mailed fist, trident, sword, shield, buckler, banner, jackboot, clarion.
ellauri077.html on line 816: Meaningless words. In certain kinds of writing, particularly in art criticism and literary criticism, it is normal to come across long passages which are almost completely lacking in meaning. Words like romantic, plastic, values, human, dead, sentimental, natural, vitality, as used in art criticism, are strictly meaningless, in the sense that they not only do not point to any discoverable object, but are hardly ever expected to do so by the reader. When one critic writes, "The outstanding feature of Mr. X's work is its living quality," while another writes, "The immediately striking thing about Mr. X's work is its peculiar deadness," the reader accepts this as a simple difference opinion. If words like black and white were involved, instead of the jargon words dead and living, he would see at once that language was being used in an improper way.
ellauri077.html on line 879: Why is it that the Oedipus has a bigger head than is healthy for him? Why seeing him makes me like a vaccinated cell seeing a virus that I am vaccinated against, but still claustrophobic. I must put my fatherly upper jaw on his head, like the male lion does to the mare, and like a snakely Laertes slip my lower jaw under his pimply chin and swallow. The problem is I cannot do it: he is not my own son, but the son of my wife, and that would be murder. So I just keep my upper jaw symbolically and quietly on his crown like a crown. and suffer this corona. My vaccination took a year of pain, and this is just a chimera of that constant pain.
ellauri078.html on line 34: Infinity is something we are introduced to in our math classes, and later on we learn that infinity can also be used in physics, philosophy, social sciences, etc. Infinity is characterized by a number of uncountable objects or concepts which have no limits or size. This concept can be used to describe something huge and boundless. It has been studied by plenty of scientists and philosophers of the world, since the early Greek and early Indian epochs. In writing, infinity can be noted by a specific mathematical sign known as the infinity symbol (∞) created by John Wallis, an English mathematician who lived and worked in the 17th century.
ellauri078.html on line 48: Curves that have been called a lemniscate include three quartic plane curves: the hippopede or lemniscate of Booth, the lemniscate of Bernoulli, and the lemniscate of Gerono. The study of lemniscates (and in particular the hippopede) dates to ancient Greek mathematics, but the term "lemniscate" for curves of this type comes from the work of Jacob Bernoulli in the late 17th century.
ellauri078.html on line 50: The consideration of curves with a figure-eight shape can be traced back to Proclus, a Greek Neoplatonist philosopher and mathematician who lived in the 5th century AD. Proclus considered the cross-sections of a torus by a plane parallel to the axis of the torus. As he observed, for most such sections the cross section consists of either one or two ovals; however, when the plane is tangent to the inner surface of the torus, the cross-section takes on a figure-eight shape, which Proclus called a horse fetter (a device for holding two feet of a horse together), or "hippopede" in Greek. The name "lemniscate of Booth" dates to its study by the 19th-century mathematician James Booth.
ellauri078.html on line 89: She effectively secluded herself and poured forth poems with a profligacy bordering on hypographia. If you want a fairly succinct on-line biography of Dickinson, I enjoyed Barnes & Noble’s SparkNotes.
ellauri078.html on line 141: By Emily Dickinson’s own account, she delighted in all aspects of the school—the curriculum, the teachers, the students. The school prided itself on its connection with Amherst College, offering students regular attendance at college lectures in all the principal subjects— astronomy, botany, chemistry, geology, mathematics, natural history, natural philosophy, and zoology. As this list suggests, the curriculum reflected the 19th-century emphasis on science. That emphasis reappeared in Dickinson’s poems and letters through her fascination with naming, her skilled observation and cultivation of flowers, her carefully wrought descriptions of plants, and her interest in “chemic force.” Those interests, however, rarely celebrated science in the same spirit as the teachers advocated.
ellauri078.html on line 143: In an early poem, she chastised science for its prying interests. Its system interfered with the observer’s preferences; its study took the life out of living things. In “‘Arcturus’ is his other name” she writes, “I pull a flower from the woods - / A monster with a glass / Computes the stamens in a breath - / And has her in a ‘class!’” At the same time, Dickinson’s study of botany was clearly a source of delight. She encouraged her friend Abiah Root to join her in a school assignment: “Have you made an herbarium yet? I hope you will, if you have not, it would be such a treasure to you.” She herself took that assignment seriously, keeping the herbarium generated by her botany textbook for the rest of her life.
ellauri078.html on line 147: Dickinson found the conventional religious wisdom the least compelling part of these arguments. From what she read and what she heard at Amherst Academy, scientific observation proved its excellence in powerful description. The writer who could say what he saw was invariably the writer who opened the greatest meaning to his readers. While this definition fit well with the science practiced by natural historians such as Hitchcock and Lincoln, it also articulates the poetic theory then being formed by a writer with whom Dickinson’s name was often later linked. In 1838 Emerson told his Harvard audience, “Always the seer is a sayer.”
ellauri078.html on line 161: Emmy ei ollut mikään siivooja. Se ei pitänyt pölyhuiskasta. No ei imurikaan ole yhtään parempi. Seija tempaisi imurin luukkua niin että muovisarana katkesi. Ei siitä enää tule kalua. Emmy oli witty kuten Lizzy Bennettin äiti, mutta pitikö se ize witeistä? VITTE, VITTEE, E-EE-O! lauloi merikapteeni Fuck Löfgren miehistöineen Paimiosta eli Heikki Silvennoinen Kummeleissa. Was Emily gay? None of business sanoo tylysti Quoran vastaaja, mut of you insist, yes in all probability she was. Her companion was her sister-in-law Gilbert. Proustillakin oli Gilberte, ja Albertine. Kirjailijat joilla on jotain sanottavaa on usein poikkeavia.
ellauri078.html on line 185: 4. His dying Crimson, like a Robe, 4. Näin ruumis peittyy purppuraa Sen kuoleva kirkkaanpunainen niinku puku,
ellauri078.html on line 187: Then I am dead to all the Globe, En enää turvaa maailmaan, Sitten mä oon kuollut koko pallolle,
ellauri078.html on line 188: And all the Globe is dead to me. se minulle nyt kuollut on. Ja koko pallo on kuollut mulle.
ellauri078.html on line 265: Ainoo kiinnostava puoli sarjassa on monet hyviin työpaikkoihin pesiytyneet autistit ja psykopaatit. Niillä tosiaan on kysyntää. Ne pärjää vielä tekoälylle. Ne on yhtä konemaisia. Hyvä kexintö on että tansk. miespoliisi on hihittävä luihu tekoreilu tyhmä valehtelija ja ruoz. nainen loogisempi autistinen kylmiö. Mut terismäisen roiston kohtelu on tollasta Steve Jobs tyyppistä pahan ihannointia. Tää ois voinut olla hyvä teofrastinen luonnetutkielma muotopuolista ihmisistä jos se ei olis tollanen lapsellinen poliisi ja roisto jännäri. Ne on kaikki paskoja.
ellauri078.html on line 320: This is the Sun's objective, Tää on auringon objektiivi
ellauri079.html on line 43: The name "slapstick" originates from the Italian Batacchio or Bataccio – called the "slap stick" in English – a club-like object composed of two wooden slats used in commedia dell'arte. When struck, the Batacchio produces a loud smacking noise, though it is only a little force that is transferred from the object to the person being struck. Actors may thus hit one another repeatedly with great audible effect while causing no damage and only very minor, if any, pain. Along with the inflatable bladder (of which the whoopee cushion is a modern variant), it was among the earliest special effects. Pynchonilla on myös pierutyynyjä.
ellauri079.html on line 69: Vaikka hänellä on vähän muodollista koulutusta ja hän on täysin naiivi maailmasta ulkopuolella aluetta jossa hän elää, Jed Klampetilla on koko joukko moukanjärkeä. 11.ssa episodissa hän paljastuu Mummin tyttären leskexi, Rose Ellenin, vaikka on vain 6v nuorempi kuin Mummi. Hän on Luke Klampetin ja sen vaimon poika, ja sillä on sisko nimeltä Myrtti. Jed on hyvänhkainen mies ja perheen pää. Iso öljylammikko sen omistamassa suossa oli sen rääsyistä rikkauxiin -matkan alku Beverlyn mäkiseudulle. Hän on tavallisesti heteromies Mummin ja Jethron ilveille. Hänen hokemansa on "Noo, koira vieköön!" Sama hokema kuin Sokrateella siis: νὴ τὸν κύνα (ne ton kyna), Phaedo 98e; Cratylus 411b; Phaedrus 228b; Gorgias 461b, 466c. The meaning is obscure but it may be equivalent to 'by gosh' and 'by golly' in English; ways to say 'by God!' without using the name in vain. Jed oli 1/3 hahmosta jotka esiintyivät sarjan kaikissa 274 episodissa. Aika monta koirahokemaa saatiin kuulla siis.
ellauri079.html on line 122: A lot of fans will remember this awkward but funny family from TV and probably be able to sing the theme song without having to hear it. The Beverly Hillbillies were after all a favorite show back in their day and inspired a lot of other ideas that came much later, like David Foster Wallace´s magnum opus The Infinite Jest. The attempt to make a movie out of the show wasn’t all that successful and kind of left a bad taste in a lot of peoples’ mouths since it was such a poor attempt that even watching the trailer was something that people didn’t want to admit for a while. Sometimes the best thing you can do is remember the good times and think back to the original that made it something special. Lets hope they will never, never try to make a movie out of Infinite Jest. Jim Incandenza tried that once already, with singularly bad results.
ellauri079.html on line 137: Wampum is a traditional shell bead of the Eastern Woodlands tribes of Native Americans. It includes white shell beads hand fashioned from the North Atlantic channeled whelk shell and white and purple beads made from the quahog or Western North Atlantic hard-shelled clam. Before European contact, strings of wampum were used for storytelling, ceremonial gifts, and recording important treaties and historical events, such as the Two Row Wampum Treaty or The Hiawatha Belt. Wampum was also used by the northeastern Indian tribes as a means of exchange, strung together in lengths for convenience. The first Colonists adopted it as a currency in trading with them. Eventually, the Colonists applied their technologies to more efficiently produce wampum, which caused inflation and ultimately its obsolescence as currency.
ellauri079.html on line 210: Häkki. Näitä on useita, kaikki vastustavat kaupallista tv-viihdettä ja tv-mainoxia. Valon lajeja. Synkät logiikat. Kai tennis käy kaikille? "Täällä ei ole häviäjiä". Virtausta laatikossa (Flux in the Box, ks tätä). Nää on tennisaiheisia. Loputon läppä. Näitä on 5? versiota. Kaupallista viihdettä. Anulaarifuusio on ystävämme. Ditto voimistettu valo. Berkeleyn sairaanhoitajien liitto. Cambridgen kielioppiteoreetikkojen liitto. Eklottava Steven "Pinky" Pinker mainitaan. Leskimies. Kuolema Scarsdalessa. Ehkä homoilua. Hupia kera lampaiden. Immanentti valtakunta. Tuskan lajeja. Erilaisia pieniä liekkejä. Näissä on viittauxia aviolliseen uskottomuuteen, varmaan Wallun äitykän. Medusa vastaan odaliski. Vois olla Wallun äiti vs. tyttöystävä. Kone aaveessa. (p.o. Ghost in the Machine eikä toisinpäin.) Homo duplex. Tusinoittain John Waynejä. Painoton teeseremonia. Taivaan ja helvetin avioehtosopimus. Tässä mainitaan taas äiti Teresa. Kenenhän mielestä se oli upea? Läppä. Yleisö näyttelijänä. Hyvin ärsyttävä Wallusta. Yhdysvaltalaisten yritysten keskijohdon kyynelehtiviä edustajia. Keskeneräinen. Tää vois suoraan viitata James D. Wallacen tuotantoon (alla). Disney Leith tuuma tuumalta. Readymade-draama. Jälkimmäisiä taas puolitusinaa. Olix tää se Viihde vai? Mies joka alkoi epäillä olevansa lasia. Skizoilua. Amerikkalainen vuosisata tiilen kautta nähtynä. Muzehän on just tää kirjanen?! Onaniadi. Ei erityisen hauska. Maailmankaikkeus menettää malttinsa. Siipikarja siivillään. Moebius strippaa. Tästä tulee mieleen Klibanin Freud´s first slip. Hyvästi byrokraatille. Verisisko: kovaakin kovempi nunna. Väkivallalla herkuttelua. Tulkoon kevennys. Nimettömiäkin on aika liuta. Poissa on Troy. Siitä tuli violetti ex-kaupunki, saastetynnöri. Voittokuponki on poistettu. Wallun painostava muistelus narisevan sängyn purusta isän kaa. Äiti joka ei tykkää siivoamisesta imuroi. Kuuluisien diktaattorien vauvavalokuvia. Viittaus Eskaton-peliin kai. Seiso naurun takana seisovien miesten takana. Lisää rebublikaanista sosiaalitoimistovihaa. Ihan kuin ennen vanhaan. Painostavia isimuisteluxia. Terävä pikku roisto. Turtanoiden hyinen majesteettisuus. Hyvännäköisiä miehiä pienissä fixuissa huoneissa joiden jokainen sentti käytetään typerryttävän tehokkaasti. Oiskohan toi vika jotain homoilua pöpilässä. Alhaisen lämpötilan yhteiskuntaoppi. Poor Yorick. (Ainakin) 3 hurraahuutoa syylle ja seurauxelle. Antaa ymmärtää että Tavis bylsi Aprillia. Halu haluta. Jotain nekrofiliaa. Turvallinen veneily ei ole sattumaa. Antaa ymmärtää että Joellen naama jäi veneen potkuriin. Erittäin vähäinen vaikutus. Narkoleptinen aerobic-opettaja. Oiskohan se Wallu ize. Yöllä on sombrero päässä. Oidipaalista höpöä. Wallu oli takuulla oidipaalinen. Rikostoveri! ...koko tekotaiteellisen ja raivostuttavan epätasaisen uran typerin, inhottavin, tökeröin ja huonoiten editoitu tuote. Pääosissa ikääntynyt pederasti (James) ja tatuoitu katuprostituoitu (Joelle). Sano H niinkuin himokkuus. Jonkun Bressonin synnin enkelien coveri. Never höörd. Aineeton maa. Yawn. Oli suuri ihme että hän eli isässä häntä tuntematta. Taas painostavia isimuisteluxia. Kuolema ja sinkkutyttö. Joku kilometrin pituinen nimi muka jonkun Peter Weissin näytelmästä tehdylle filmille. James yökkii yleisön päälle tuoden mieleen paskanheiton Oulussa. Liian hauskaa. Niinpä niin. Tuo ei ollut enää hauskaa. Surullinen tapaus nimeltä minä. Pahoillaan joka paikassa.. Tähän se päättyi, tai oikeammin loputtomaan läppään nummero 5.
ellauri079.html on line 277: In Quandaries and Virtues, Edmund Pincoffs maintains that we observe a multiplicity of moral norms. A common life in which we participate supplies a context in which many virtues play diverse functional roles. He suggests, without developing the idea, that such a common life provides us with a structure for organizing and harmonizing the many moral norms we attempt to pursue. This essay explores that idea. Bodies of shared practical knowledge, such as medicine and scientific research, provide examples of empirically (...)
ellauri080.html on line 104: 4:5 ei mee 1:1. Miten nää sit menee? Sangviinikot on rohkeita, koleerikot äreitä, melankoliset mähiä, flegmaatikot tyyniä. No sit yli jäis toi tunnollinen/hössö piirre. Onxe sit vaan uusi? Onko se sama kun Riemastuxen anaalis-obsessiivinen/retentiivinen tai neuroottinen? Ei tunnollisuus kyl liity selkeesti kehenkään, ellei fleguihin. Mut niitä on kai löperöjäkin, niinku joku Oblomov. Onx tää piirre 5 oikeesti joku modernin työelämän artefakti? Miten jaetan vastakkaiset piirteet muille tyypeille: jos melankoliset on konstitutionaalisesti mähiä, onx kaikki muut sit seurallisia? Vai voix ne olla kumpaa vaan, ikäänkun rändöminä? Tää jää nyt vähän auki.
ellauri080.html on line 257:
- Has little interest in other people's problems
ellauri080.html on line 356: The TCI is based on a psychobiological model that attempts to explain the underlying causes of individual differences in personality traits.
ellauri080.html on line 365: Self-directedness can be seen as the executive branch of a person’s system of mental self-government. People who are self-directed recognize that their attitudes, behaviors, and problems reflect their own choices. They tend to accept responsibility for their attitudes and behavior and they impress others as reliable and trustworthy persons. As a result, a person’s Self-directedness is an important indicator of reality testing, maturity, and vulnerability to mood disturbance....
ellauri080.html on line 372: Self-transcendence: it’s a term you’ve probably heard before.
ellauri080.html on line 402: Adaptability: Highly adaptable people can easily switch from one activity or location to another, without any problems. Those who are less adaptable need to take time to feel comfortable with change or new situations.
ellauri080.html on line 437: In Jungian typology, the original ‘unity’ of human consciousness is first divided into two poles of attitude: extraversion and introversion. These represent two fundamentally distinct yet complementary relationships between inner and outer reality. Extraversion is characterized bya flow of energy and interest from the subject to the object, from the inner to the outer. Identification with the outer gives meaning to the inner. Introversion is completely the opposite. It is characterized by a flow of energy and interest from the object to the subject, from the outer to the inner.
ellauri080.html on line 441: The introvert will give ultimate significance to subjective, inner experience and will tend to assign importance to what is happening externally only as it related to this inner experience, or only if it will lead to personal growth. The extravert, contrarily, will give ultimate significance to what is happening externally in the objective, outer world and will assign very little importance or completely disregard inner experience, unless it could lead to outer growth. These are obviously two diametrically opposed yet complementary approaches to life, reminiscent of the oriental Yin (introversion) and Yang (extraversion).
ellauri080.html on line 470: ISTP Cool self-contained problem-solvers.
ellauri080.html on line 490: “…amidst all the variety and caprice of taste, there are certain general principles of approbation or blame, whose influence a careful eye may trace in all operations of the mind.” — David Hume (ENTP). Hume oli siis quirky and verbally fluid people person. No jaa, myssypäinen poikames. Yhtä saamattomia olivat kumpikin.
ellauri080.html on line 492: This relates directly to CelebrityTypes’ observation of “NTP Knowing and NTJ Willing”, though my proposition is that this in fact applies across all types in the form of these judging axes, albeit with varying degrees of appearance. I believe that in the sense above, the FE/TI axis is more naturally wired to seek abstract knowledge, while TE/FI is more naturally wired to make concrete its visionary will.
ellauri080.html on line 512: These two attitudes can be summed up as ‘conjecturing’ and ‘examining’ respectively. The one axis seeks to discover, envision or predict the potential course (NI) plotted by their various raw experiences of things (SE); obviously the image I am summoning here is that of a scatterplot and line of best fit, though one could also summon the image of a researcher recording their observations and then forming overarching conclusions abstracted from that data.
ellauri080.html on line 514: On the NI side, a good example would be Karl Marx, who spent hours upon hours researching and observing social and economic conditions in society, from which data he developed his comprehensive theories of capital and dialectical materialism. On the SE side, a good example is Dale Carnegie, who, as CelebrityTypes pointed out in one of their function axes articles, is one of many SE types who concretize their wealth of experiences into practical wisdom, such as ‘How to Win Friends and Influence People’.
ellauri080.html on line 518: The other axis seeks to discover, cognate, or comprehend the true nature of things (SI) by compositing the uniting elements between various creative perspectives on things (NE); the image I like to use here is of a diagram showing multiple perspectives of a 3-D object in 2-D space, where each perspective conceals something in order to reveal something else.
ellauri080.html on line 520: A good example of this mentality can be found in the theories of Michel Foucault, who himself describes society as a series of power structure grids you can lay on top of the truth in order to reveal some things but conceal others, and our goal essentially should be to experiment with various power grids to discover the true limits or bounds of how human society can successfully be structured. Another example could be Martin Heidegger’s discussion of Being or existence, and how many different perspectives are required to observe it and get a full picture, because of our extremely subjective position in relation to the nature of our own existence, not to mention existence within the ever shifting realm of time.
ellauri080.html on line 524: Overall, SE/NI is much more trusting of what we could call empirical or collected data, particularly data from direct experience, which is why, as CelebrityTypes was the first to point out, it tends to feel much more “intense and singular” of vision, because it is perfectly happy with direct observation and direct conjecture from the collected data. As CelebrityTypes says, “The person will stress one point of view (Ni), which is indeed frequently the viewpoint that generates the greatest yield here and now (Se). The singularity of observation involved will frequently lend a manifest and immediate quality to the SE/NI type’s observations, which in turn tends to make them convincing.” This is because SE/NI is naturally hooked into and derived from a direct and photographic view of the world.
ellauri080.html on line 528: Meanwhile, the NE/SI axis is not so trusting of direct experience, which is hardly a mystery, because their perception of reality is introverted, meaning they aren’t interested in direct and photographic reality, but in the ideal versions of experiences abstracted from reality (e.g. Socrates’ search for the overarching ‘idea’ of everyday things like dogs, beds, piety, etc., as opposed to individual instances of these things). This is why, as CelebrityTypes also points out, “The person will also be more careful and meticulous (SI) because there is an unconscious striving to contribute one’s observations to building a system which is valid not just in the here and now, but which is perceived to be true in general: To generate the type of knowledge that could conceivably end up in a future textbook on the subject.” The axis makes use of Ne’s multifaceted nature to accomplish this.
ellauri080.html on line 532: Concerning John Maynard Keynes, an INTJ, it was said: “[He spoke] on a great range of topics, on some of which he was thoroughly an expert, but on others [he had] derived his views from the few pages of a book at which he had happened to glance. The air of authority was the same in both cases.” Meanwhile, Bertrand Russell famously said that “The whole problem with the world is that fools and fanatics are always so certain of themselves, and wiser people so full of doubts.” Coincidentally, history records a number of ENTPs and INTJs very much disliking each other.
ellauri080.html on line 540: Keynes's obituary in The Times included the comment: "There is the man himself – radiant, brilliant, effervescent, gay, full of impish jokes ... He was a humane man genuinely devoted to the cause of the common good." Kuulostaa Wallun äiskältä, wickedly funny. Ja gay. Ize asiassa gay pedophile kaiken kukkuraxi. Keynes was a libertine hedonist who wasted most of his adult life engaging in sexual relationships with children, including travelling around the Mediterranean visiting children’s brothels. Funnily wicked too.
ellauri080.html on line 542: This axis is also apparent in my own videos: you’ll notice there are quite a few of them, partly because I keep on redoing the same topics whenever I feel I’ve hit on a new perspective that I then can’t help but explain as though it were my new ‘doctrine’ because it suddenly seems so much more clear and beautiful and compelling than any previous perspectives, and I just want to get that pure idea out. Literally, after I do a video on a compelling subject, if I did it well, I’ll feel like I’ve emptied myself out, and I’ll very easily forget what it was that I just explained in that video. The idea dulls, I start finding some problems with it, and over time I mull it around with other material and then become bedazzled by the next rich synthesis.
ellauri080.html on line 556: Clinicians must take note of the high prevalence and risk of depression among persons with ASD, which may be under-reported. We initially investigated whether temperament and character could be risk factors, but found no association. However, we did find that depression might be a high predictor for suicide ideation, which could remain under-reported in adults with autism, due to impaired communication and problems with expressing emotions and thoughts.
ellauri080.html on line 609: Life on the island. A running gag is the castaways' ability to fashion a vast array of useful objects from bamboo, gourds, vines and other local materials. Some are simple everyday things, such as eating and cooking utensils, while others (such as a remarkably efficient lie detector apparatus) are stretches of the imagination. Russell Johnson noted in his autobiography that the production crew enjoyed the challenge of building these props. These bamboo items include framed huts with thatched grass sides and roofs, along with bamboo closets strong enough to withstand hurricane-force winds and rain, the communal dining table and chairs, pipes for Gilligan's hot water, a stethoscope, and a pedal-powered car.
ellauri080.html on line 617: The appearance or arrival of strange objects to the island, such as a World War II naval mine, an old silent motion picture camera and costumes, a crate of radioactive vegetable seeds, plastic explosives, a robot, a live lion, a jet pack, or a "Mars Rover" that the scientists back in the United States think is sending them pictures of Mars.
ellauri080.html on line 626: 2000-luvulla on 1900-luvun pienen notkahduxen jälkeen palattu 2 kerroxen väen järjestelmään. Notkahdus johtui vaan siitä, että teollisuustalous vaati paljon urbaanisti koulutettuja työläisiä, jotka vielä ymmärsivät järjestäytyä. Kaikki tää on nyt mennyttä. Työläisiä ei enää tarvita, kun tehtaat toimii roboteilla, keskikoulutettuja ei tarvita koska tekoäly hoitaa paperi- ja kynäntyöntöhommat. Ize asiassa rikkaat ei tarvi köyhiä enää paljon mihinkään, mitä nyt partureixi tarjoilijoixi sisäköixi vessanpesijöixi ja polkupyöräläheteixi. Ja ne hölmöt ei järjestäydy, tai ei saa. Ne on yrittäjiä. Turha yrittääkään muuta.
ellauri080.html on line 696: “It could be that people with just a few autistic traits have an increased risk of substance-abuse problems, while those with more traits are somehow protected,” Agrawal concluded. “For this study, we clumped all of these symptoms together. In future research, we want to look at how individual traits-like repetitive behaviors or being withdrawn socially-may influence risk. It could be that some traits related to autism are protective, while others elevate the risk for alcohol and substance-abuse problems.”
ellauri080.html on line 726: Mahatma Gandhi was born 2 October 1869, Porbandar, India.
ellauri080.html on line 732: In London, he became a committee member of the London Vegetarian Society, which counted luminaries such as George Bernard Shaw. At the time, vegetarianism was quite rare. Virtually nobody except Mr. Rogers believed in it.
ellauri080.html on line 737: Gandhi’s early law career in India was a struggle. He also refused a job as a high-school teacher in Bombay. To make a living, he took a job in South Africa for an Indian law firm.
ellauri080.html on line 741: In 1897, he was stripped and nearly lynched by a white mob in Natal, but when the governor sought to press charges, Gandhi refused – saying he didn’t want to use a court of law for personal issues.
ellauri080.html on line 766: In April 1942, an early Indian independence leader Sri Aurobindo urged Mahatma Gandhi to accept the proposals of Sir Stafford Cripps which gave India dominion status as a way to secure a united independent India. Gandhi refused the Cripps proposals.
ellauri080.html on line 770: Rabindranath Tagore, who was awarded the Nobel Prize for literature, was a great admirer of Gandhi, it was often Tagore alone who could persuade Gandhi to give up his fasts unto death.
ellauri080.html on line 774: Gandhi was nominated several times for the Nobel Peace Prize, but he was never awarded the prize. In 1948, the prize was left unawarded with the committe seriously considering a posthumous prize.
ellauri080.html on line 791: In the words of the Indian writer Khushwant Singh, "nine-tenths of the violence and unhappiness in this country derives from sexual repression". Gandhi isn't singularly to blame for India's deeply problematic attitudes to sex and female sexuality. But he fought, and succeeded, to ensure the country would never experience sexual freedom while his legend persevered. Gandhi's genius was to realise the great power of non-violent political revolution. But the violence of his thoughts towards women has contributed to countless honour killings and immeasurable suffering.
ellauri080.html on line 805: Gandhi was also inspired by Henry David Thoreau’s “Civil Disobedience” John Ruskin (for his critique of capitalism) and Leo Tolstoy and his philosophy of non-violence.
ellauri080.html on line 806: Two terms in the Bhagavad Gita resonated with Gandhi samabhava (“equability”) – meeting fate with a sense of detachment. And aparigraha (“nonpossession”) willingness to give up all material objects.
ellauri080.html on line 808: Gandhi asked him on a principle of non-violence “If a snake is about to bite me, should I allow myself to be bitten or should I kill it?” His mentor Rajchandbhai wrote back, “If the person lacks the development of a noble character, one may advise him to kill the snake, but we should wish that neither you nor I will even dream of being such a person.”
ellauri080.html on line 815: Ei olis kannattanut heittää sitä pihalle. Gandhi oli taistellut brittipuolella buurisodassa. Nyt seurauxena oli Intian izenäistyminen. Sixe varmaan jäi rauhannobelia vaille.
ellauri080.html on line 834: Kukahan se oli? Jenkkimoraalin taustaoletus on kapitalismin kasvuräjähdys, win-win näät perustuu sellaiseen. Nollasummapeliin se ei sovi. Jos asia ei ratkea tarjouskilpailulla, se on politiikkaa sanoo paskiaiset. Vitun tarjouskilpailut. Jopa Milton Friedmanin ja sen Chicagon roistokoplan oma peliteoria todistaa että sellaisissa voittaa rikas köyhät 6-0, koska sillä on varaa hävitä tarjouskilpailussa enemmän. Nälkäinen karvakäsi Eesau häviää koko taivaosansa ja luihu Jakob hähättelee koko matkan pankkiin.
ellauri080.html on line 838: Wallun hernekeittoesimerkki on Raamatusta. Siellä Eesau myy esikoisosansa hernekeitosta. Rahantuntevampi Jaakob pääsee joholle. Äiskä auttaa sitä kusetuxessa.
ellauri080.html on line 859: Tähän vois vielä tehdä sellasen kuvaajan ja taulukon, missä olis tyypillisen tiimin jäsenten luonneviisikulmiot ja esimerkkejä tiimeistä ja niiden jäsenistä siinä kulmiossa. Esim Jeesuxen tiimi: Pietari olis se skrode kaveri, Johannes fixu söpönnäköinen, Luukas pakkomielteinen pilkunnussija, Markus rehvasteleva salonkileijona, Matteus läski flegmaatikko, joku Jaakob olis vanha veteraani, Tuomas vastarannankiiski, jne. jne.
ellauri080.html on line 864: Published: October 5, 2013
ellauri080.html on line 871: Fiktiivinen luonne jonka valizin diagnosoitavaxi on Shrekin aasi. Aasi on hyperaktiivinen, puhelias, hauska ja herkkä aasi jolla on töröhampaat. Se tykkää laulaa, pölistä älyttömästi ja tavallisesti puhuu kuin neekeri. Hän on myös aika ärsyttävä ympärillä oleville. Aasi pitää makeasta. Se nauttii jälkiruuasta, kakusta ja muista sellaisista leivonnaisista. Aasin omituisuuxia on akrofobia, eli korkeanpaikan kammo. Se on myös värisokea ja kärsii hypokondriasta; se on luulosairas. Aasi on kärsimätön ja sillä on lyhyt keskittymiskyky.
ellauri080.html on line 997: 1973 Disney-filmi Robin Hood on tarina lainsuojattomasta Nottinghamin kaupungissa joka asuu Sherwoodin mezässä lainsuojattomien kaveriensa kaa. (Siihen aikaan oli vielä pelottavia meziä.) Gängi johtajana Robin Hood, taistelee Nottinghamin sheriffia vastaan (siihen aikaan sheriffillä ei ollut stezonia eikä tähteä, ei edes kuudestilaukeavaa), joka kantaa mahottomia veroja kaupunkilaisilta. Robin Hood ja sen sukkahousuihin pukeutuneiden hilpeiden miesten joukkue varastaa mädäntyneiltä varakkailta, vastoin sheriffin antamia lakeja (jotakin sekin antoi sittenkin), ja antaa rahat takaisin köyhille (vaikkei välttämättä samoille).
ellauri080.html on line 999: Mitä eettisiä perusteita joista puhuttiin ylhäällä Robin Hood käyttää oikeuttaaxeen päätöxensä jättää huomiotta sheriffin vahvistamat lait?
ellauri082.html on line 47: The Prozac book chronicles her battle with depression as a college undergraduate and her eventual treatment with the medication Prozac. Michiko Kakutani wrote in The New York Times, “Wrenching and comical, self-indulgent and self-aware, Prozac Nation possesses the raw candor of Joan Didion's essays, the irritating emotional exhibitionism of Sylvia Plath's The Bell Jar, and the wry, dark humor of a Bob Dylan song.”
ellauri082.html on line 49: Sylvia Plath would have earned a nobel prize instead of Sponge Bob.
ellauri082.html on line 101: The biography by Tyrannosaurus Max paints a less than flattering portrait of Wallace. That’s not to say it’s a vicious takedown—it’s probably about as even-handed as a biography about the author is going to be, and I can imagine books about him in the future being a lot less level-headed in either direction. Basically, DFW was an extremely troubled individual and probably not a very awesome person qua person. He was often misanthropic, violent, cruel (especially to women), and self-absorbed. But what’s great about the biography is how it allows these rather hideous characteristics to disgust as well as inform; knowing the uglier aspects of DFW’s personality is extremely enlightening with regard to his work. It seems to me that the writer was extremely aware of his immense character flaws and sought in his work (his novels and his non-fiction particularly) to overcome them, and in his work he was able to occupy a wholly different realm than he was in his actual life. Well actually not at all that different. The books project a rather nasty person too.
ellauri082.html on line 123: But at the same time, Hal’s condition deepens. Ever since Hal ate the mold as a child, he’s been a brilliant communicator but unable to feel. (694: “Hal himself hasn’t had a bona fide intensity-of-interior-life-type emotion since he was tiny … in fact he’s far more robotic than John Wayne.”) JOI was the only one who could see it. In life, everyone thought JOI was just being crazy but in death (as a wraith) he can actually read Hal’s thoughts and thus confirm his view.
ellauri082.html on line 133: Hal never leaves leaves his toothbrush unattended (870), but that’s no problem for a wraith. He places the DMZ on Hal’s brush and Hal brushes his teeth (860) and immediately begins experiencing symptoms: Ortho thinks Hal’s crying when Hal thinks he’s speaking in a neutral tone (862).
ellauri082.html on line 143: It’s too late because someone got there first and took the anti-Entertainment cartridge (126) embedded in JOI’s head (31). Whoever took it is presumably the person who’s made and mailed the extant copies. It couldn’t be the A.F.R. or O.U.S. or they wouldn’t still be searching for it. It probably wasn’t the F.L.Q. because they didn’t know how to read master cartridges—they just thought they were blank tapes in their displays were blank. (483n205) It couldn’t be Avril acting alone; she has problems but she’s not that kind of cold-blooded killer. It had to have been Orin.1
ellauri082.html on line 149: As seen in Chapter 1, Hal’s condition deepens until he literally can’t communicate at all, but no longer feels like a robot anymore. (12: “I’m not a machine. I feel and believe.”) The only thing he has left is tennis and he looks forward to playing Ortho Stice in the final match of the WhataBurger. But Stice is possessed by his father (in the manuscript, Stice is called “the Wraithster”), so the novel ends as Hal finally gets to really interface with his father — in the only way he has left.
ellauri082.html on line 155: Throughout the first half there are several major passages, basically monologues, from characters such as Schtitt, Hal and Marathe that critique the average American’s lack of objects of worship that are larger and therefore more permanent and perfect (in a sense) than the individual.
ellauri082.html on line 191: ob.core.windows.net/funday/2017/12/0e685d83-7883-4673-9278-b876886fbb89.gif" />
ellauri082.html on line 214: Runoilijaveli Jönsy lähetti mulle runon Robert Frostilta. Frostin nimi on vilahtanut ohi ehkä jossakin, mutta emmä siitä oikeestaan tiennyt tuon taivaallista, vaikka Aale Tynnin 1000 laulujen vuottakin olin muka lukenut. Tätä lumista runoa ei meidän enkun tunnilla kyllä tullut vastaan, ei tullut kyllä muistaaxeni mitään muitakaan. Meidän enkun maikka ei ollut mikään romantikko, vaan täti aika tyrnävä, kuuluisan Eeva Riikosen enkku-suomi sanakirjan tekijä. Jöns oli opetellut tämän runon ulkoa Kabulissa kirjastossa. Se on jo exoottista se. Olikohan siellä lunta ollenkaan. No tänä vuonna ainakin on tullut lujasti. Mutta nyt on säät sekaisin koko pallolla.
ellauri082.html on line 216: Robert Lee Frost (26. maaliskuuta 1874 San Francisco, Kalifornia, Yhdysvallat – 29. tammikuuta 1963 Boston, Yhdysvallat) oli yhdysvaltalainen runoilija ja kirjailija. Sitä ei pidä sekoittaa britteihin TV-hahmo David Frostiin eikä covid-tartuntaiseen brexit-neuvottelijaan elinikäisparoni David Frostiin.
ellauri082.html on line 218: Frost syntyi San Franciscossa, vaikka hänet usein yhdistetäänkin Uuteen-Englantiin. Hänen äitinsä oli skotti Isabelle Moodie ja hänen isänsä oli toimittaja William Prescott Frost Jr. Isä oli viinaanmenevä uhkapeluri ja tiukka kurinpitäjä, jolla oli palava intohimo politiikkaan. Isä kuoli 1885 tuberkuloosiin ollessaan vasta 36-vuotias. Isän kuoltua äiti, 11-vuotias Robert ja hänen hieman nuorempi sisarensa muuttivat Kaliforniasta Yhdysvaltain itärannikolle Massachusettsin Lawrenceen lähelle isän vanhempia. Äiti liittyi lahkolaiseen swedenborgilaiseen kirkkoon ja kastatti lapsensa siellä. Aikuisena Frost kuitenkin erosi kirkosta.
ellauri082.html on line 227: By Robert Frost Robert Frostilta
ellauri082.html on line 250: Epäilemättä Robert ja Emily Dickinson runoilevat kuolemasta, KILL! KILL! on FUCK! FUCK! in ohella keskeisin lyyrisistä aiheista. Tai mixei eeppisistäkin, mutta niissä on sentään aika lailla myös tota EAT! EAT! tematiikkaa. Netissä on runsaasti esimerkkiesseitä neuvottomille amerikkalaisille lukiolaisille joiden usein käsketään vertailla näitä runoja. Esim tällänen:
ellauri082.html on line 252: Elämmekö aina? (No emme tietysti, tyhmä kysymyskin. Eihän siitä muuten kannattaisi runoilla.) Kenties tietoisuus jatkuu kuoleman jälkeen? (Ken tosiaankin ties, muttei kertonut, oli kalpeana hiljaa vaan. Todennäköisesti ei.) En pelkää kuolemaa tällä elämäni hetkellä. (Joopa joo kun olen nuori, en fataalisti kipeä enkä hengenvaarassa.) Uskonko että olemme kaikki vangittuja hengellisiä olentoja? (No ei vitussa, me ollaan kaupungistuneita mezien miehiä, kieriskelemässä eläintarhan häkissä olkikupo jalkain välissä äänettömästä naurusta.) Ajattelenko että olemme ikuisia, ja vaan väliaikaisesti täällä ihmishahmossa? (Höpöhöpöä, pelkkää toiveajattelua. Meistä ei jää kuin multaa tai tuhkaläjä.) Puhuja Robert Frostin Pysähdys mezässä lumisena iltana, ja puhuja Emily Dickinsonin Kun en pysäyttänut kuolemalle eivät pelkää kuolemaa. (No sitähän ei sanota, vaikka aika tyynen rauhallisesti ne sen ottavat. Helppoahan se on runossa.) Kuolemaa voi pelottomasti kazella henkisenä, romanttisena ja kuonpuoleisena karkumatkana sielun orjuudesta ja tuskasta.
ellauri082.html on line 262: Tässä kertoja puhuu suoraviivaisesti kuinka kuolemattomuus annettiin "subjektille" kuolemalla. Jos uskoo kuolemattomuuteen niin kenties kuolema sit pelottaa vähän vähemmän. Robert Frostin Pysähdys mezässä lumisena iltana kertoja sanoo rivejä kuten, "se ei nää etmä oon pysähtynyt tähän kazomaan kun mezä täyttyy lumesta." Ja sit vielä "Mezä on suloinen, pehmeä ja syvä." Tämmöiset rivit vois mahdolliseti viitata haluun jäädä sinne noihin meziin ikuisesti. On mahdollista että Frost kirjottaa vaan jostakusta joka on pysähtynyt kepilliselle matkalla jonnekin. Kuitenkin mahdolisesti se on kirjoittanut toisenlaisesta helpotuxesta joka tunnetaan suikin nimellä.
ellauri082.html on line 284: Robert Frost is by no means the only poet in whom a hunger for recognition comes into conflict with a wariness, an inner reticence, a distaste for self-revelation. But I think in him the conflict was particularly acute. On the one hand he could be quite shameless in his pursuit of favourable reviews and his presentation to the public of a folksy and largely misleading image. On the other hand we have cryptic comments like in this poem it is not made explicit what the ‘things forbidden’ are that he has managed to preserve for himself but I take them to be his poems, or those things that his poems keep alive, and he is rightly confident enough in his own powers as a poet to feel that he has succeeded.
ellauri082.html on line 290: Size että Dickinson on 1800-luvun nainen ja Frost 1900-luvun mies on syytä pitää mielessä. Em ei tykännyt jumalisesta tylystä äidistä eikä pölyjen pyyhkimisestä. Se oli öykkärimäisen poliitikkoisän ja väpelön veljen suosikki ja bylsi jälkimmäisen vaimoa. Bob oli isätön ja kiinni swedenborgilaisesti darraavassa äidissä joka oli isän kopean itärannikon maajussisuvun armoilla. Kumpikin suhtautui yläkerran porukoihin ymmärrettävästi epäillen mutta ehkä toiveikkaasti. Sixkai ne jatkuvasti niitä mätystää. Lea kävi kirkon tilaisuuxissa kalkkiviivoilla, sanoi että siitä voi olla jotain hyötyä.
ellauri082.html on line 318: Tää pätkä oli ihan kirjan alussa. Oli jo unohtunut. Toi sama izepetos että vetää niin paljon kamaa ettei tee muka mieli enää esiintyi muuallakin. TK eli telekone on enkuxi TP eli telepuutteri. Telkan ja tiezan hybridi ilman nettiä ja mobiilia. Vikapisto, väärä arvaus, typerä idea. Kyllähän jengi kazoo nykyään ihan vimmatusti Netflixiä, muze johtuu kyllä paljolti siitä ettei ne pääse baanalle ezimään panofixiä.
ellauri082.html on line 352: In allen Religionen lasse sich eine „Tendenz auf rein innerliche Allgemeingültigkeit, auf Vergeistigung, Verinnerlichung, Versittlichung und Individualisierung und Herausbildung eines immer tieferen Erlösungsglaubens“ beobachten.
ellauri082.html on line 354: Also lässt sich Troeltschs Aufsatz globalgeschichtlich in die Reihe von Reaktionen einordnen, mit denen Vertreter der Weltreligionen Buddhismus, (protestantisches) Christentum, Hinduismus und Islam ab Mitte des 19. Jahrhunderts auf die Herausforderungen des naturwissenschaftlichen Materialismus und der allgemeinen Religionsgeschichte antworten, zumeist indem Religion allgemein über Kriterien der Innerlichkeit und Universalität definiert und die eigene Tradition im Gegenüber zu anderen als vollständige Erfüllung dieser Kriterien dargestellt wird.
ellauri082.html on line 426: a) Pecos Bill oli skoobari joka ampui inkkareita eponyymisessä sarjakuvalehdessä.
ellauri082.html on line 428: b) Sponge Bob on Paavo Pesusieni.
ellauri082.html on line 498: The reader who found himself swamped with too much metaphysics in the last chapter will have a still worse time of it in this one, which is exclusively metaphysical. Metaphysics means nothing but an unusually obstinate effort to avoid thinking clearly.
ellauri082.html on line 501: A big problem here is the idea that our soul is just a bunch of mental states that fly away every which way as we die. That is very bad medicine for eternal soul as Plato saw, its the abominable soul as harmony argument. I must now try and find my way out of it before the hierarchy gets pissed.
ellauri082.html on line 505: Evolution is a slight problem I must own, it looks as if it was a continuous process of rearranging atoms, unless we urge that with the dawn of consciousness an entirely new nature seems to slip in, something whereof the potency was not given in the mere outward atoms of the original chaos. (I know it sounds both silly and pretentious, but what else can I say. I must save the appearances of the good book, or else I am soon out of my cozy Harvard chair.)
ellauri082.html on line 535: - Elämä: Elämä on parasta huumetta. Ihan tosi. Joskus sen ohessa käytetään alla olevaa paskaa. Tällöin ei nauti elämästä, mutta nauttii jostain muusta, mikä voikin kauppana kannattaa. Tällöin ei käytetä elämää, vaikka eletäänkin. Kuinkahan järkevää on tuolla tapaa haaskata globaalisti dekriminalisoitua huumetta, jonka saatavuus on täysin katkotonta? Diilerien pelotetaktiikkana tosin on, että tarjonta ehtyy kokonaisuudessaan heti, jos käytön katkaisee. Jos elämä otetaankin kokonaan pois, vieroitusoireet ovat kamalat.
ellauri082.html on line 711: Kun Tavis eno kättelee pikkutyttö Echtiä näyttää kuin se vetäis käteen ja tyttö tekis sille Sieg heiliä. Tässähän on Wallun misogynia ja xenofobia yhdessä paketissa. Xenofobia putkahtaa esiin myös 112-hampaisen pakistanilaislääkärin munapussien väkivaltaisessa kohtelussa Don Gatelyn sairasvuoteen kaiteen välistä. Misogynia + rasismi: jättikokoiselle mustalle sairaanhoitajattarelle on vähemmän noloa puhua paskahädästä kuin valkoiselle ryppyhuuliselle joka kävelee kuin pingviini.
ellauri082.html on line 713: Wallun jutut sen äidistä alav. 234 on takuulla tosipohjaisia. Se mainizee mm aivan oikein eze oli perunafarmarin tytär Mainesta ja anaalis-obsessiivinen äiskänkielen pilkunnussija. Iskä lähti sitä pakoon Lylen luo. Eli oli kai sit kaappihinuri. Bylsiköhän äiskäpäiskä jotain Wallun kamua kuin April Waynea.
ellauri082.html on line 714: En yllättyisi yhtään. Niin wickedly fanny se oli. Terveisiä funnyfarmilta. Sen fobiat oli suljetut paikat epäselvä viestintä ja epäsiisteys. Nää on Wallu ilmeisesti perinyt. Hal vaikuttaa tässä toisteisessa homesienimuistossa noin 2 eikä 4-vuotiaalta. Mutta mitä Wallu sellaisesta tiesi. Ei sillä ollut lasta eikä oikein naistakaan. Eikä 2 veljeä vaan vain 1 sisko.
ellauri082.html on line 751: The researchers examine victim signaling, which they define as “a public and intentional expression of one’s disadvantages, suffering, oppression, or personal limitations.” They also examine virtue signaling, defined as “symbolic demonstrations that can lead observers to make favorable inferences about the signaler’s moral character.”
ellauri082.html on line 762: They replicated this association in a follow-up study. This time they used a different, more robust, dark triad scale. They then found a stronger correlation between the dark triad traits and victim signaling (r = .52).
ellauri082.html on line 770: Participants were told to imagine they worked with another intern. And that they were competing to land a job. Participants were told, “You keep noticing little things about the way the intern talks to you. You get the feeling the other intern may have no respect for your suggestions at all. To your face, the intern is friendly, but something feels off to you.”
ellauri082.html on line 800: In downtown Boston you may see trash cans, cones, or other objects being used to save parking spots in residential areas throughout the winter. No one wants to shovel their spot to find it taken by the time they return! This is common practice, and completely legal.
ellauri083.html on line 50: Helmi $ Taala oli lähetyssaarnaaja-asennossa tehty blondi kiinanamerikatar, talousliberaali tän kovaa yritteliäisyyttä peukuttavan rags to riches nobelkirjan perusteella ja antikommari. Sillä oli selkeesti länkkäreiltä poliittinen tilaus. Vähintään puolet nobelvoittajista on ollut tollasia tilauxia. Ellei enemmän.
ellauri083.html on line 82: The writer Pearl S. Buck emerged into literary stardom in 1931 when she published a book called "The Good Earth." That story of family life in a Chinese village won the novelist international acclaim, the Pulitzer, and eventually a Nobel Prize. Her upbringing in China as the American daughter of missionaries served as inspiration for that novel and many others. By her death in 1973, Pearl Buck had written around 100 books.
ellauri083.html on line 124: It can never be said of the Swedish Academy that they don't know what they like. Between Independent People, The Growth of the Soil, The Good Earth, and probably several others I haven't read yet it seems clear that the path to a Nobel Prize in literature is the one trod by struggling farmers out in the countryside.
ellauri083.html on line 129: Growth of the Soil (Norwegian Mannens Grodor), is a novel by Knut Hamsun which won him the Nobel Prize in Literature in 1920. It follows the story of a man who settles and lives in rural Norway.
ellauri083.html on line 135: The Good Earth (English The Good Earth) is a historical fiction novel by American author Pearl S. Buck published in 1931 that dramatizes family life in a Chinese village in the early 20th century. It was influential in Buck's winning the Nobel Prize for Literature in 1938.
ellauri083.html on line 143: In the city, O-Lan and the children beg while Wang Lung pulls a rickshaw. Wang Lung's father begs but does not earn any money, and sits looking at the city instead. They find themselves aliens among their more metropolitan countrymen who look different and speak in a fast accent. They no longer starve, due to the one-cent charitable meals of congee, but still live in abject poverty. Wang Lung longs to return to his land. When armies approach the city he can only work at night hauling merchandise out of fear of being conscripted. One time, his son brings home stolen meat. Furious, Wang Lung throws the meat on the ground, not wanting his sons to grow up as thieves. O-Lan, however, calmly picks up the meat and cooks it. When a food riot erupts, Wang Lung is swept up in a mob that is looting a rich man's house and corners the man himself, who fears for his life and gives Wang Lung all his money in order to buy his safety. O-Lan finds a cache of jewels elsewhere in house and takes them for herself.
ellauri083.html on line 153: Independent People (Icelandic: Sjálfstætt fólk) is an epic novel by Nobel laureate Halldór Laxness, originally published in two volumes in 1934 and 1935; literally the title means "Self-standing folk". It deals with the struggle of poor Icelandic farmers in the early 20th century, only freed from debt bondage in the last generation, and surviving on isolated crofts in an inhospitable landscape.
ellauri083.html on line 155: The novel is considered among the foremost examples of social realism in Icelandic fiction in the 1930s. It is an indictment of materialism, the cost of the self-reliant spirit to relationships, and capitalism itself. This book, along with several other major novels, helped Laxness win the Nobel Prize in Literature in 1955.
ellauri083.html on line 182: Pyhäköilijät eli Shriners International, also commonly known as The Shriners or formerly known as the Ancient Arabic Order of the Nobles of the Mystic Shrine, on jenkki vapaamuurarikerho varakkaille veljille. Hyväveliseura par excellence. Päämaja Tampa Florida. Veljexet tunnetaan punaisista fezeistä. Ne otti Arabian pois nimestä 9/11 tapahtuman johdosta. Niiden pomot on potentaatteja. Ne tykkää pitää paraateja. Lennättää jättimäisiä ryppyisiä ilmapalloja. Ajaa pikkuisilla autoilla. Soittaa torvisoittoa. Nahkiaisissa ne antaa alokkaille pyllyyn sähköiskuja.
ellauri083.html on line 223: She is one of the main villains of the novel, obsessed with revenge against the Evrémondes. She ruthlessly pursues this goal against Charles Darnay, his wife, Lucie Manette, and their child, for crimes a prior generation of the Evrémonde family had committed.
ellauri083.html on line 336: For all their profusion, these paled in comparison with Sachs's newest display pieces: The Cabinet, 2014, and The Rockeths, 2017. The former was a folding case fashioned from orange-and-white striped barricades and festooned with hundreds of tools, hung in groups and inscribed with the names of individuals who have "inspired, influenced, or frightened" the artist--from Le Corbusier and Louis Kahn to the members of the Wu-Tang Clan--while the latter was less a cabinet than a kind of portable workbench and shelving unit, similarly jam-packed with the tools of the artist's trade, as well as a collection of model rockets, all again labeled to namecheck various figures of personal importance--scientists, musicians, artists; Apollo, Dionysus, Stringer Bell. The fetishistic frisson the assembled materials (pens, pliers, drill bits, tape measures) clearly provoke in Sachs was made even more explicit in McMasterbation, 2016, one of a trio of scale-model space modules arrayed on plinths. Featuring a copy of the legendarily comprehensive McMaster-Carr hardware catalogue spread open like a porn mag centerfold designed for lonely gearheads--alongside a ready supply of Vaseline and a handy tissue dispenser--it was part cathectic confession of objectophilia and part self-derogating indictment of his own work's tendencies toward sometimes masturbatory excess. Smart and stupid, funny and somehow a bit sad, it was classic Sachs: too much information, in every sense of the phrase.
ellauri083.html on line 338: Hendershot recalls that, in the Schreber case, God was believed to manifest his creative and destructive power as celestial rays (Freud 22). As with spider-webs and hedgehogs quills, this radial pattern describing dilation and contraction, movement back and forth from center to circumference and from circumference to center, is the essential figure for the paranoid narcissism of a subject who feels threatened by the world and guilty for having taken "his own body [...] as his love-object" (Freud 60). Signaling Fistule's repressed homosexuality, the rays of his intelligence had first been focused on the masochistic annihilation of his genitals, which he denies were the original object of his love ("organes hideux," "vomitoires de dejections"), and then had been used in reconstructing a sexless new reality. Insisting on his exemption from the Naturalist law of biological determinism, Fistule denies his human parentage and maintains that he was born of a star, which, shining like the rays of his genius, had inseminated him and allowed him to be the father of himself, causa sui. Homosexual guilt initially projected as the corruptibility of matter is overcome by Fistule's principle of Stellogenesis, which turns flesh into radiance and bodies into starlight. As Hendershot concludes: "In Freud's theory, the paranoiac withdraws from the world (decathexis), directs his or her cathectic energy to the ego resulting in self-aggrandizement, and then attempts to reestablish a cathectic relationship with the world in the form of a delusional system"
ellauri083.html on line 342: M*A*S*H (an acronym for Mobile Army Surgical Hospital) is an American war comedy-drama television series that aired on CBS from 1972 to 1983. It was developed by Larry Gelbart as the first original spin-off series adapted from the 1970 feature film M*A*S*H, which, in turn, was based on Richard Hooker's 1968 novel MASH: A Novel About Three Army Doctors.
ellauri083.html on line 344: It follows a team of doctors and support staff stationed at the "4077th Mobile Army Surgical Hospital" in Uijeongbu, South Korea, during the Korean War (1950–53). The show's title sequence features an instrumental-only version of "Suicide Is Painless," the original film's theme song.
ellauri083.html on line 361: The name Tektite comes from the Greek word tektos, which means “molten”. Tektites are natural glass objects of meteorite origin. The age of the Tektites is estimated at about ten million years.
ellauri083.html on line 374: At age seven Dylan first accused Allen of touching her inappropriately—a bombshell allegation that definitively tore apart the blended Allen-Farrow family, which was already reeling from Farrow’s discovery of nude photographs of her adopted daughter Soon-Yi Previn at Allen’s apartment. Dylan’s accusation has reverberated in the media ever since. Dylan would consistently repeat the allegation over the years—to her mother, to therapists, to experts, and to former Connecticut state prosecutor Frank Maco, who found probable cause for bringing a criminal case against Allen. (Maco said he ultimately declined to do so out of concern for retraumatizing a fragile child.)
ellauri083.html on line 396: Samat puisevat iänikuiset roolijaot narkkareiden tiimissä kuin jossain Ryhmä Haun käskynjaossa: tää ois Robin Hoodin iloisten veikkojen niinko se skrode kaveri, tää ois se nörtti pellepeloton, tää olis reipas tyttökoira, toi äitimäinen ymmärtäjä, ja tossa sitten koko tiimin vetäjä, kaikin puolin urhea ja etevä, vaikkei mihkään varsinaisesti erikoistunut mut verraton hengennostattaja. Näitä on nähty niin tuhannessa jenkkisarjassa, eikä loppu häämötä, sama tiimihenki haisee vaan silmänkantamattomiin.
ellauri083.html on line 424: This is another argument the Christian should not use. It is rapidly becoming obsolete, thank God.
ellauri083.html on line 434: Supposedly, NASA scientists and engineers puzzled over this problem until one of them opened the Bible to Joshua 10:12–14 and 2 Kings 20:8–11. The NASA personnel supposedly came to realize that their missing day could be explained by addition of nearly a day at the time of Joshua and an additional 40 minutes at the time of Hezekiah, thus proving that these biblical events actually occurred.
ellauri083.html on line 438: He reasoned that the battle was on the twenty-fourth day of the fourth month of the Hebrew civil calendar in the 2,555th year after the creation. This was the 933,285th day since creation. From this, Totten determined that this day was a Tuesday. Next, Totten calculated backward in time from June 17, 1890 to the battle of Gibeon. He concluded that the battle was 1,217,530 days previously, which was a Wednesday. Hence, there was a day missing. Of course, Totten’s computation required very precise dates, something that most people today would find ludicrous. However, Totten managed to obtain some audience in the late 19th century. While most people today are not impressed with such an approach, apparently invoking a computer, as in the Hill story, is sufficient to convince some people today. This story has been debunked many times, so it is a shame that it keeps being repeated.
ellauri083.html on line 514: I will tell you why; so shall my anticipation prevent your discovery, and your secrecy to the King and Queen moult no feather. I have of late, but wherefore I know not, lost all my mirth, forgone all custom of exercises; and indeed, it goes so heavily with my disposition that this goodly frame the earth, seems to me a sterile promontory; this most excellent canopy the air, look you, this brave o’erhanging firmament, this majestical roof fretted with golden fire, why, it appears no other thing to me than a foul and pestilent congregation of vapours. What a piece of work is man! How noble in reason? How infinite in faculties, in form and moving, how express and admirable? In action how like an angel? In apprehension, how like a god? The beauty of the world, the paragon of animals. And yet, to me, what is this quintessence of dust? Man delights not me; no, nor woman neither, though by your smiling you seem to say so.
ellauri083.html on line 610: Job 8:21
ellauri083.html on line 613: Job 20:5
ellauri083.html on line 616: Job 31:29
ellauri088.html on line 63: Lingvistit koko internetissä oli hirmu innostuneita kun tää filmi tuli ulos - vihdoinkin filmi meistä, joka on (lähes) asiallinen! Naislingvisti, vielä aika nättikin! Internetin suosikkilingvisti Gretchen McCulloch keräsi joukon artikkelilinkkejä (tässä) ja teki episodin podcastiinsa nimeltä Lingthusiasm tästä filmistä (transkripti). Kun sen kilpailija Neil deGrasse Tyson teki naisia halventavan huomautuxen että olisi pitänyt valita salakirjoitusexpertti ja astrobiologi puhumaan mustekaloille (ne on sentään enimmäxeen miehiä, Turing jopa homo sapiens), Kieliloki postasi avoimen kirjeen lingvisteiltä selittämään mixi se on väärässä.
ellauri088.html on line 93: Wundt wanted to catalog all possible basic immediate experiences, and form a “periodical table of elements” as chemistry did, through observing consciousness.
ellauri088.html on line 94: The way to observe consciousness is through the method of introspection of
ellauri088.html on line 102: Kazottiin neloskanavalta toi Aliens eiku Arrivals. Onhan niissä paljon yhteistä, ahdistunut naissankari ensinnäkin (mix naisten pitää olla aina ahdistuneita pääosissa?), ja että alienit on jotenkin ällöjä, jotain matelijoita tai mustekaloja. Mix ne on niin harvoin tollasia Star Warsin söpöjä karvaturreja. Kaippa se on tätä termiittiapinan luontaista xenofobiaa.
ellauri088.html on line 122: Och när eller om det kommer: vågar jag gå på Nalen i Stockholm och stå i ett publikhav om Los Lobos kommer?
ellauri088.html on line 229: I think what you’re looking for is the “second most developed country without universal healthcare”. You can find a zoomable version at Health Index - Global Residence Index; click on “Universal Health Care Map” a bit down the page.
ellauri088.html on line 231: The answer to your question is probably mostly down to what you’d call “most developed”. I’d pick Mongolia, but I’ll gladly admit to not being an expert on any of the non-green countries; I’ve only visited two of them myself.
ellauri088.html on line 280: Seuraava pätkä löytyy ss. 219-220. 14 vee Giannín ikävä ateisti-isä on ostanut sille uuden testamentin, jota se haluaa lukea koska on ihastunut jännännäköiseen jumaliseen Robertoon. Isä kysyy:
ellauri088.html on line 285: Olin alkanut lukea evankeliumitekstejä kuvitellen, että kyse olisi sadusta, joka saisi minut rakastamaan Jumalaa samalla tavalla kuin Roberto. Koin siihen
ellauri088.html on line 353: Cuando subieres a caballo, no vayas echando el cuerpo sobre el arzón postrero, ni lleves las piernas tiesas y tiradas y desviadas de la barriga del caballo, ni tampoco vayas tan flojo que parezca que vas sobre el rucio: que el andar a caballo a unos hace caballeros; a otros, caballerizos. Sea moderado tu sueño, que el que no madruga con el sol, no goza del día; y advierte, ¡oh Sancho!, que la diligencia es madre de la buena ventura, y la pereza, su contraria, jamás llegó al término que pide un buen deseo.
ellauri088.html on line 380: Ramma alla hippier. Använd vid behov gas och batong och bura in dem bara, skriver Arvonen på Twitter. Några timmar senare var han ute på Twitter igen, då med en tillägg om at han var full när han skrev inlägget. Jag uppmutrar inte till at någon skall dödas när hen blir påkörd. Min tweet var obetänksam. Fascistisk och omoralisk var den inte.
ellauri088.html on line 535: Bobin isän mielikirja oli Jerome K. Oliverin "Kolme miestä veneessä (ja koira)" vuodelta 1889. Siitä kertoo seuraava paasaus.
ellauri088.html on line 549: Mä arrrvasin! No sen isäpappa oli paizi rautakauppias ja huono rahamies myös saarnamies. Virnuilun alla Jerome vaikuttaa olevan aika hapantelija. Mut kaikkein paras lukijoiden ja Bob Heinleinin ja sen isän mielestä oli tää
ellauri088.html on line 555: Three invalids.—Sufferings of George and Harris.—A victim to one hundred and seven fatal maladies.—Useful prescriptions.—Cure for liver complaint in children.—We agree that we are overworked, and need rest.—A week on the rolling deep?—George suggests the River.—Montmorency lodges an objection.—Original motion carried by majority of three to one.
ellauri088.html on line 565: Kingston.—Instructive remarks on early English history.—Instructive observations on carved oak and life in general.—Sad case of Stivvings, junior.—Musings on antiquity.—I forget that I am steering.—Interesting result.—Hampton Court Maze.—Harris as a guide.
ellauri088.html on line 595: Viktoriaanista läppäkeppiä. Heinleinin opetus on tässä: A man almost always gets what he wants if he wants it badly enough. Kolme stoogea eivät riittävästi halunneet ananasta purkista. Bob lainasi ton kynäveizi-insidentin Have spacesuit-kirjan esipuberteettiseen Kip/Peewee kohtauxeen.
ellauri088.html on line 597: Klapkan kirjan pitkäveteisyys selittyy sillä että se julkaistiin jatkokertomuxena. Noi George ja Harris oli sen oikeita kamuja, mutta veneretki oli oikeasti sen hanimuun. Jeromen teutonofobiaa edustaa myös seuraava hauska tarina:
ellauri088.html on line 599: In addition, here’s a much earlier spoof of German lieder, from the British comic novel “Three Men in a Boat,” published in 1889. I think it shows just how pervasive and long-standing is the English-speaker’s resistance to the rarefied world of the German art-song. The excerpt is also very silly and probably tells you at least as much about British anti-intellectualism and complacency as it does about German over-earnestness.
ellauri088.html on line 601: It appeared that the song was not a comic song at all. It was about a young girl who lived in the Hartz Mountains, and who had given up her life to save her lover’s soul; and he died, and met her spirit in the air; and then, in the last verse, he jilted her spirit, and went on with another spirit—I’m not quite sure of the details, but it was something very sad, I know. Herr Boschen said he had sung it once before the German Emperor, and he (the German Emperor) had sobbed like a little child. He (Herr Boschen) said it was generally acknowledged to be one of the most tragic and pathetic songs in the German language.
ellauri088.html on line 633: Omalaatuinen ja hyvänluontoinen sanaleivos salaneuvos ja miljunääri Tobler (Robert Walserin Konttoristin pomo oli Herr Tobler auch. Kirjailijat kexi nimen toisistaan riippumatta natustaessaan Tobleronea.) haluaa tutkia ihmisluontoa. Hän osallistuu nimellä Eduard Schulze oman firmansa, maailmankuulujen Putsblank-tehtaiden kilpakirjoituxeen ja voittaa toisen palkinnon: 10-päiväisen oleskelun Bruckbeurenin Grandhotellissa Alpeilla. Sinne matkustaa Tobler kokeazeen, miten ihmiset reagoivat köyhään surkimuxeen. Seuralaisexeen se ottaa pitkäaikaisen palvelijansa Johannin, joka esittää hotellimajoituxen aikana rikasta laivanvarastajaa.
ellauri088.html on line 635: Toblerin huolekas nuori tytär Hildegard valmistaa hotellia vielä ennen Toblerin lähtöä salaa valepukuisen miljunäärin vierailuun ja sen tottumuxiin, mutta ei tule maininneexi salanimeä. Virheellisesti luullaan tri Fritz Hagedornia, työtöntä mainosammattimiestä, joka on voittanut kilpakirjoituxen 1. palkinnon (1 viikko Grand hotellia) pohataxi ja hemmotellaan vastaavalla tavalla. Tobler sitävastoin työnnetään pieneen lämmittämättömään ullakkokammariin, henkilökunta ilkkuu sitä ja panee sen sekatöihin. Jo ekana päivänä Tobler ystävystyy Hagedornin kaa, vaikka kauhistunut staabi koittaa estää veljeilyn niiden välillä. Johann informoi Hildegardia sekaannuxesta ja sen seurauxista. Hildegaard ei kestä enää kotona ja ilmestyy Toblerin emännöizijän Frau Kunkelin kanssa, jonka nimexi ilmoitetaan Julchen-täti, hotelliin iskää kazomaan. Fritz rakastuu tietysti Hildegard „Schulze“en, ja ne sepittävät salaa hääsuunnitelmia. (Hildegard oli sanonut Fritzulle, että sillä on sama sukunimi kuin Eduardilla.)
ellauri088.html on line 637: Joidenkin päivien kuluttua muut hotellivieraat savustavat Toblerin hotellista ja se palaa tyttärensä, Johannin ja rouva Kunkelin kanssa Berliniin. Lähtö on niin äkkinäinen, että Hagedornille ei ehditä kertoa. Hildegard kertoo kuitenkin pikaisesti hotellinjohtajalle sekaannuxesta, joka saa siitä melkein hermoromahduxen. Hahaa!
ellauri088.html on line 639: Epätoivoinen ja pahaa-aavistamaton Hagedorn palaa myös Berliniin ja ezii turhaan omaa Hildegardia, jostahan sen on oletettava että sen nimi on Schulze. Sitten se ja sen äiti kuzutaan vieraisille Toblereille; tämä tunnustaa oikean minuutensa, mikä ei kuitenkaan lopeta veljeilyä. Myös Hildegard antautuu Toblerin tyttären ominaisuudessa. Seuraavan juhlasyömisen yhteydessä Toblerille ilmoitetaan telefonisesti, että Grandhotel, jonka se ajatteli ostaa heittääxeen ulos sen porzarin ja tirehtöörin - kuuluukin jo hänelle (näin käy aina Roope Ankallekin Akussa).
ellauri088.html on line 641: Erich Kästner, joka näihin aikoihin on jo joutunut valtaanpäässeiden kansallissosialistien vihoihin ja on melkein julkaisukiellossa, julkaisee kolmen lumisen miehen ainexen 1934 salanimellä Robert Neuner komediana 4 näytöxessä, nimellä "Elinikäinen lapsi". Lukuunottamatta päähenkilöiden nimiä (z. B. Schlüter pro Tobler, kuten myöhemmin filmissä) ovat sisällöt pitkälti samoja. Jo ensi-ilta 7. syyskuuta 1934 Bremenin näytelmätalolla (ohjaus: Fritz Saalfeld) on suuri menestys.
ellauri089.html on line 37: I wonder how harmless such people are? To what extent civilization is retarded by the laughing jack-asses, the empty-minded belittlers? Nature's obvious mistakes? Mies sitä tulee räkänokasta, muttei tyhjän naurajasta. (Heinlein)
ellauri089.html on line 48: Robert Anson Heinlein (/ˈhaɪnlaɪn/; July 7, 1907 – May 8, 1988) was an American science-fiction author, aeronautical engineer, and Naval officer. Sometimes called the "dean of science fiction writers", he was among the first to emphasize scientific accuracy in his fiction, and was thus a pioneer of the subgenre of hard science fiction. His published works, both fiction and non-fiction, express admiration for competence and emphasize the value of critical thinking. His work continues to have an influence on the science-fiction genre, and on modern culture more generally.
ellauri089.html on line 53: Bobin isä ja isoveli oli samannimiset, Rex Ivar sr ja jr. Iskä oli kauppa-apulainen v. 1900 ja myöhemmin kassa, kirjanpitäjä ja farmikalujen kiertokauppias. Sotiminen loppui Bobin sukuhaaran osalta Vietnamiin, jota Bob kannatti penkkiurhona ja tuki vielä kuvitteellisesti Vietnamin veteraaneja niteessä Glory Road. Heinleinit olivat siistejä mutta koleerisia sakemanneja. Bobin roistotkin ovat paizi muuten moraalittomia myös hirmu epäsiistejä. Insult upon injury.
ellauri089.html on line 55: Siisteys on sexikästä Bobista. Peewee on melkein nätti kun sen vaatteet on pesty eikä niistä puutu nappeja, ja rintanapitkin on kiinni, tosin Peeweellä ei vielä ole mainittavasti rintoja. 10v kuluttua se voisi olla sievä. Ja älykkyys on sekin sexikästä. Peewee osaa liu'uttaa laskutikkua kuin teekkari. 2*2 = noin 4. I remembered hearing Dad say: "Some people insist that mediocre is better than best. They delight in clipping wings beause they themselves can't fly. They despise brains because they have none. Pfah! They laugh at clean panties because their own are soiled!" Touché, Lapukka, eikö mitä?
ellauri089.html on line 64: Space Cadet (1948) may not be Heinlein’s best juvenile novel (that spot is usually reserved for Have Space Suit—Will Travel), but it is a solid contender for one of the top spots. Space Cadet would probably be a memorable novel if Heinlein had written no other juvenile books.
ellauri089.html on line 69: Heinlein draws on his knowledge of school societies to make the Academy a “real” place; there are bull sessions, roommate problems, anxieties about passing, shared food packages, and parties at the Academy just as there are at any school, especially a boarding school or college. Also, as Matt becomes more and more a Cadet, he finds, as do many of Heinlein’s juvenile heroes, that he has grown beyond his family and that there is an unbridgeable gulf between his perspective as a Cadet and his parents’ perspectives as ground-dwellers in Kansas City. His living and working in space is a part of it, but even more important, Matt realizes, is his membership in an international/interplanetary organization. He is no longer the boy he was when he left home. He becomes aware of this difference and, understanding it, is able to deal with a family that now seems somewhat provincial to him.
ellauri089.html on line 71: The society of the Academy also allows Heinlein to develop characters who do not succeed as well as Bob does. Bill Hädensa, a bright student who has been in the Academy an unusually long time when Matt arrives, eventually drops out because he “has no wish to become a superman.”
ellauri089.html on line 77: Heinlein used his science fiction to earn money and as a way to explore his provocative social and political ideas, and to speculate how progress in science and engineering might shape the future of politics, race, religion, and sex. Within the framework of his science-fiction stories, Heinlein repeatedly addressed certain social themes: the importance of being earnest, individual liberty and self-reliance, the nature of incestual sexual relationships, the obligation individuals owe to their societies, the influence of organized religion on culture and government, and the tendency of society to repress nonconformist thought. He also speculated on the influence of space travel on human cultural practices.
ellauri089.html on line 96: When Robert A. Heinlein opened his Colorado Springs newspaper on April 5, 1958, he read a full-page ad demanding that the Eisenhower Administration stop testing nuclear weapons. The science fiction author was flabbergasted. He called for the formation of the Patrick Henry League and spent the next several weeks writing and publishing his own polemic that lambasted "Communist-line goals concealed in idealistic-sounding nonsense" and urged Americans not to become "soft-headed".
ellauri089.html on line 103: He wanted to do his own juvenile work, stating that: "I want to do my own stuff, my own way". Vapaa sexi kiinnosti. Kirjassa Strangers in a strange land se oli aivan daft. Jill is homophobic and says that "nine times out of ten, if a girl gets raped it's partly her own fault." Bobia kiinnosti myös insesti. Heinlein often posed in situations where the nominal purpose of sexual taboos was irrelevant to a particular situation, due to future advances in technology.
ellauri089.html on line 106: His hobby was stonemasonry. Bob ja Ginny kumpikiin veti smögää ketjuna mut bob sai köystistä vanhuxena tiakohtauxia. Heinlein jelppi Reagania tähtien sodassa vielä kalkkiviivoilla, mutta pettyi pahasti. 1987 se kirjoitti:
ellauri089.html on line 110: The least science-y Heinlein is probably Double Star, about an actor who stands in for a galactic leader.
ellauri089.html on line 114: From Rocket Ship Galileo (1947) to Have Space Suit—Will Travel (1958), Robert A. Heinlein wrote twelve novels, all published by Scribners, that were aimed at what we now call the juvenile market. In Dr. Johnson’s sense of the word, they are classics in their field, they have stood the test of time. They appeared first in hardback—unusual in a field in which, until the 1950s or 1960s, almost all major works were published in magazines or in paperback; and during the 1950s, hardback copies of these novels could be found in school and public libraries all across the country. These novels later appeared in paperback and have remained available in that form to the present. Heinlein’s juvenile novels have been largely ignored by both science fiction critics and critics of children’s literature; but even a half century after they were written, these novels are still “contemporary” and are still among the best science fiction in the range.
ellauri089.html on line 116: There's no gap between will and action, for Heinlein's juveniles adulthood is devotion to something they want to do. This is the origin of the books' guilelessness—for that worldview is innocence, down at its root, even when the grand theme of a book is slavery, war, or survival in harsh circumstances. Being human isn't an insoluble problem for them. It's a puzzle that has a solution: be juvenile. What made Robert Heinlein inimitable was the easiness of the people in those stories.
ellauri089.html on line 132: Heinlein's name is often associated with the competent hero, a character archetype who, though he or she may have flaws and limitations, is a strong, accomplished person able to overcome any soluble problem set in their path. They tend to feel confident overall, have a broad life experience and set of skills, and not give up when the going gets tough.
ellauri089.html on line 167: Giovanni Virginio Schiaparelli (14. maaliskuuta 1835 – 4. heinäkuuta 1910) oli italialainen tähtitieteilijä.[1][2] Hän opiskeli Torinon yliopistossa ja Berliinin observatoriossa ja työskenteli yli neljänkymmenen vuoden ajan Breran observatoriossa.
ellauri089.html on line 172: July 20, 1969, is probably the most important day in human history - the day men from Earth first set foot on another planet, Earth's moon. Robert Heinlein was a guest commentator (along with Arthur C. Clarke) with Walter Cronkite on this historic occasion.
ellauri089.html on line 176: Art Clarke ja Bob Heinlein näyttää kuulennon aikaan kuvatussa teeveehaastattelussa aikalailla Aartuu Diituulta ja Siitriipiioulta, tässä järjestyxessä. Clake oli huojuva hujoppi ja Bob näytti vesipostilta. Nasan droideja.
ellauri089.html on line 181: Bobilla ei ollut lapsia. Paljon sexiä vähän villoja.
ellauri089.html on line 191: On se kumma miten just nää samat mätämäisyydet toistuu miehekkäästä mieskirjailijasta toiseen. On jotenkin pakko. Sellasta Timo Airaxisen essentialismia. Kaikissa Heinleinin henkilöissä on pieni Bob sisällä. Wormfacet mukaanlukien.
ellauri089.html on line 193: Bobia pohditutti myös uskonto:
ellauri089.html on line 197: Job: A Comedy of Justice is a novel by Robert A. Heinlein published in 1984. The title is a reference to the biblical Book of Job and James Branch Cabell's book Jurgen, A Comedy of Justice.
ellauri089.html on line 200: Whenever they manage to make some stake, an inconveniently timed change into a new alternate reality throws them off their stride (once, the money they earned is left behind in another reality; in another case, the paper money earned in a Mexico which is an empire is worthless in another Mexico which is a republic). These repeated misfortunes, clearly effected by some malevolent entity, make the hero identify with the Biblical Job.
ellauri089.html on line 205: Dave Langford reviewed Job: A Comedy of Justice for White Dwarf #61, and stated that "When blasphemy stops being witty and shocking, it tends to become pointless, like graffiti scrawled on church wall. I didn't dislike this one, but . . . wait for the paperback, eh?"
ellauri089.html on line 207: Mä luulen että tää Jobin tarina on Bobin omaelämäkerrallista job historya. Margarethe on sen ateistijuutalainen emäntä. Aikaisemmin Bob oli todennut mm. seuraavaa:
ellauri089.html on line 309: Uskontobiznixen kolme sanaa: anteexi kiitos ole hyvä.
ellauri089.html on line 347: "It is easy to see why Robert Heinlein ranks at the top among science fiction writers ... he adds a delightful sense of humor and a deft sense of timing and suspense." (Chicago Sunday Tribune 1958)
ellauri089.html on line 349: Bob Heinleinin Have Spacesuit Will Travel on infantiili, vaikka piti olla juveniili. K.L. Humphreys kirjoittaa sarjaa adult romaaneja yleisamerikkalaisista pojista, jotka ovat alfasusia. Pitäisi ehkä tarkastella kysymystä G.E. Mooren etiikan valossa. Cambridgen apostolina se tiesi yhtä ja toista pojista. Niin hyvistä kuin pahoista.
ellauri089.html on line 356: Kip on All-American Boy, joka on vähän eroottisesti kiinnostunut Peeween sakkolihasta. Näkee siitä märkiä unia. Pienihän Peewee on, pikkupissis joka käy kahtatoista mutta näyttää 10-vuotiaalta, liekö mensut alkaneet? Tulikohan ufoon mukaan nuken lisäxi myös terveyssiteitä? Ei väliä, ei hiir olk koska heinkrinti alan kuallu. (Laitila). Kipin pitäisi silti pitää mielessä että ripitön tyttö on kuin suolaton keitto. (Rääkkylä) Bobilla on muuallakin vähän taipumusta pedofiliaan.
ellauri089.html on line 417: § 7. or simple: for if by definition be meant the analysis of an object of thought, only complex objects can be defined; …
ellauri089.html on line 423: § 10. "Good", then, denotes one unique simple object of thought among innumerable others; but this object has very commonly been identified with some other—a fallacy which may be called "the naturalistic fallacy" … Tässä Jyriltä alkaa lähteä riimu käsistä. Sillä on niin iso lehmälauma ojassa, ettei se pysty pitelemään sitä. 1 lehmistä on että ainoa merkizevä hyvä on termiittiapinoiden hyvä, lehmistä ei mitään väliä. Niitä on hyvä popsia aivan vapaasti. Koska lehmät ei ole meikäläisiä, niillä ei ole sielua, ei äänioikeutta eikä armeijaa, ja ne maistuu meistä apinoista hyvältä. So there!
ellauri089.html on line 455: § 25. Such theories may be divided into two groups (1) Metaphysical, (2) Naturalistic; and the second group may be subdivided into two others, (a) theories which declare some natural object, other than pleasure, to be sole good, (b) Hedonism. This present chapter will deal with (a). …
ellauri089.html on line 491: § 42. The theory that nothing but pleasure is desired seems largely due to a confusion between the cause and the object of desire, and, even if it is always among the causes of desire, that fact would not tempt anyone to think it a good. …
ellauri089.html on line 493: § 43. Mill attempts to reconcile his doctrine that pleasure is the sole object of desire with his admission that other things are desired, by the absurd declaration that what is a means to happiness is "a part" of happiness. …
ellauri089.html on line 529: § 61. and it is shewn that, in consequence of this confusion, his representation of "the relation of Rational Egoism to Rational Benevolence" as "the profoundest problem of Ethics", and his view that a certain hypothesis is required to "make Ethics rational", are grossly erroneous. …
ellauri089.html on line 542: § 66. The term "metaphysical" is defined as having reference primarily to any object of knowledge which is not a part of Nature—does not exist in time, as an object of perception; but since metaphysicians, not content with pointing out the truth about such entities, have always supposed that what does not exist in Nature, must, at least, exist, the term also has reference to a supposed "supersensible reality": …
ellauri089.html on line 544: § 67. and by "metaphysical Ethics" I mean those systems which maintain or imply that the answer to the question "What is good?" logically depends upon the answer to the question "What is the nature of supersensible reality?" All such systems obviously involve the same fallacy—the "naturalistic fallacy"—by the use of which Naturalism was also defined. …
ellauri089.html on line 558: § 74. But ethical propositions cannot be reduced to this type: in particular, they are obviously to be distinguished …
ellauri089.html on line 570: § 80. but from neither of these psychological facts does it follow that "to be good" is identical with being willed or felt in a certain way. The supposition that it does follow is an instance of the fundamental contradiction of modern Epistemology—the contradiction involved in both distinguishing and identifying the object and the act of Thought, "truth" itself and its supposed criterion: …
ellauri089.html on line 572: § 81. and, once this analogy between Volition and Cognition is accepted, the view that ethical propositions have an essential reference to Will or Feeling, is strengthened by another error with regard to the nature of Cognition—the error of supposing that "perception" denotes merely a certain way of cognising an object, whereas it actually includes the assertion that the object is also true. …
ellauri089.html on line 591: § 88. In this chapter we shall deal with the third object of ethical enquiry: namely answers to the question "What conduct is a means to good results?" or "What ought we to do?" This is the question of Practical Ethics, and its answer involves an assertion of causal connection. …
ellauri089.html on line 603: § 94. and (b) even to decide that, of any two actions, one has a better total result than the other in the immediate future, is very difficult; and it is very improbable, and quite impossible to prove, that any single action is in all cases better as means than its probable alternative. Rules of duty, even in this restricted sense, can only, at most, be general truths. …
ellauri089.html on line 605: § 95. But (c) most of the actions, most universally approved by Common Sense, may perhaps be shewn to be generally better as means than any probable alternative, on the following principles. (1) With regard to some rules it may be shewn that their general observation would be useful in any state of society, where the instincts to preserve and propagate life and to possess property were as strong as they seem always to be; and this utility may be shewn, independently of a right view as to what is good in itself, since the observance is a means to things which are a necessary condition for the attainment of any great goods in considerable quantities. …
ellauri089.html on line 607: § 96. (2) Other rules are such that their general observance can only be shewn to be useful, as a means to the preservation of society, under more or less temporary conditions: if any of these are to be proved useful in all societies, this can only be done by shewing their causal relation to things good or evil in themselves, which are not generally recognised to be such. …
ellauri089.html on line 613: § 99. And (d) if we consider the distinct question of how a single individual should decide to act (α) in cases where the general utility of the action in question is certain, (β) in other cases: there seems reason for thinking that, with regard to (α), he should always conform to it; but these reasons are not conclusive, if either the general observance or the general utility is wanting; …
ellauri089.html on line 644: § 112. In order to obtain a correct answer to the question "What is good in itself?" we must consider what value things would have if they existed absolutely by themselves; …
ellauri089.html on line 646: § 113. and, if we use this method, it is obvious that personal affection and aesthetic enjoyments include by far the greatest goods with which we are acquainted. …
ellauri089.html on line 652: § 116. But (3) granted that the appropriate combination of these two elements is always a considerable good and may be a very great one, we may ask whether, where there is added to this a true belief in the existence of the object of cognition, the whole thus formed is not much more valuable still. …
ellauri089.html on line 656: § 118. from the two judgments (a) that knowledge is valuable as a means, (b) that, where the object of the cognition is itself a good thing, its existence, of course, adds to the value of the whole state of things: …
ellauri089.html on line 660: § 120. We thus get a third essential constituent of many great goods; and in this way we are able to justify (1) the attribution of value to knowledge, over and above its value as a means, and (2) the intrinsic superiority of the proper appreciation of a real object over the appreciation of an equally valuable object of mere imagination: emotions directed towards real objects may thus, even if the object be inferior, claim equality with the highest imaginative pleasures. …
ellauri089.html on line 662: § 121. Finally (4) with regard to the objects of the cognition which is essential to these good wholes, it is the business of Aesthetics to analyse their nature: it need only be here remarked (1) that, by calling them "beautiful", we mean that they have this relation to a good whole; and (2) that they are, for the most part, themselves complex wholes, such that the admiring contemplation of the whole greatly exceeds in value the sum of the values of the admiring contemplation of the parts. …
ellauri089.html on line 664: § 122. With regard to II. Personal Affection, the object is here not merely beautiful but also good in itself; it appears, however, that the appreciation of what is thus good in itself, viz. the mental qualities of a person, is certainly, by itself, not so great a good as the whole formed by the combination with it of an appreciation of corporeal beauty; but it is certain that the combination of both is a far greater good than either singly. …
ellauri089.html on line 674: § 127. and (3) the consciousness of intense pain: this appears to be the only thing, either greatly good or greatly evil, which does not involve both a cognition and an emotion directed towards its object; and hence it is not analogous to pleasure in respect of its intrinsic value, while it also seems not to add to the vileness of the whole, as a whole, in which it is combined with another bad thing, whereas pleasure does add to the goodness of a whole, in which it is combined with another good thing; …
ellauri089.html on line 684: § 132. but there seems no reason to think that, where the evil object exists, the total state of things is ever positively good on the whole, although the existence of the evil may add to its value as a whole. …
ellauri090.html on line 36: A Academia surgiu mais como um vínculo de ordem cordial entre amigos do que de ordem intelectual. No entanto, a ideia do instituto não foi bem aceita por alguns: Antônio Sales testemunhou numa página de reminiscência: "Lembro-me bem que José Veríssimo, pelo menos, não lhe fez bom acolhimento. Machado, creio, fez a princípio algumas objeções." Como presidente, Machado fazia sugestões, concordava com ideias, insinuava, mas nada impunha nem impedia aos companheiros. Era um acadêmico assíduo. Das 96 sessões que a Academia realizou durante a sua presidência, faltou somente a duas.
ellauri090.html on line 64: [14.3. 9.31] paul: Coxia is the side of the stage. And when you say someone is a rat, rato, of something means that they do that very often, could be almost obsessively
ellauri090.html on line 68: [14.3. 9.34] Bo Egov: Outra carta justifica uma certa complexidade no começo de seu relacionamento: "Sofreste tanto que até perdeste a consciência do teu império; estás pronta a obedecer; admiras-te de seres obedecida", o que é um mistério para os recentes estudiosos das correspondências do autor.
ellauri090.html on line 92: A obra de Machado de Assis constitui-se de 10 romances, 219 contos, 10 peças teatrais, 5 coletâneas de poemas e sonetos, e mais de 600 crônicas.
ellauri090.html on line 96: A crítica moderna chama de trilogia realista os três romances que marcaram um novo estilo na obra de Machado de Assis, a saber Memórias Póstumas de Brás Cubas (1881), Quincas Borba (1891) e Dom Casmurro (1899), e que decisivamente também inovaram a literatura brasileira, introduzindo o Realismo no Brasil e precedendo outros elementos da literatura contemporânea.
ellauri090.html on line 98: Entre os críticos e o público, destacam-se Memórias Póstumas de Brás Cubas e Dom Casmurro. A crítica considera que suas melhores obras são as da Trilogia Realista.
ellauri090.html on line 147: —Bolha não tem opinião. Apparentemente, ha nada mais contristador que uma dessas terriveis pestes que devastam um ponto do globo? E, todavia, esse supposto mal é um beneficio, não só porque elimina os organismos fracos, incapazes de resistencia, como porque dá logar á observação, á descoberta da droga curativa. A hygiene é filha de podridões seculares; devemol-a a milhões de corrompidos e infectos. Nada se perde, tudo é ganho. Repito, as bolhas ficam na agua. Vês este livro? É D. Quixote. Se eu destruir o meu exemplar, não elimino a obra, que continua eterna nos exemplares subsistentes e nas edições posteriores. Eterna e bella, bellamente eterna, como este mundo divino e supra-divino.
ellauri090.html on line 154: Ouça, ignaro. Sou Santo Agostinho; descobri isto ante-hontem; ouça e cale-se. Tudo coincide nas nossas vidas. O santo e eu passámos uma parte do tempo nos deleites e na heresia, porque eu considero heresia tudo o que não é a minha doutrina de Humanitas; ambos furtámos, elle, em pequeno, umas peras de Carthago, eu, já rapaz, um relogio do meu amigo Braz Cubas. Nossas mães eram religiosas e castas. Emfim, elle pensava, como eu, que tudo que existe é bom, e assim o demonstra no cap. XVI, livro VII das Confissões, com a differença que para elle, o mal é um desvio da vontade, illusão propria de um seculo atrazado, concessão ao erro, pois que o mal nem mesmo existe, e só a primeira affirmação é verdadeira; todas as cousas são boas, omnia bona, e adeus.
ellauri090.html on line 170: Nascido no Morro do Livramento, Rio de Janeiro, de uma família pobre, mal estudou em escolas públicas e nunca frequentou universidade. Para o considerado crítico literário norte-americano Harold Bloom, Machado de Assis é o maior escritor negro de todos os tempos, embora outros estudiosos prefiram especificar que Machado era mestiço, filho de um descendente de negros alforriados e de uma lavadeira portuguesa.
ellauri090.html on line 177: Embora seja chamada de "realista", os críticos não deixam de notar que a riqueza de gêneros e elementos nessas obras também adere resíduos do Romantismo e impressionistas. Além disso, nessas obras Machado de Assis não compactua com o esquematismo determinista dos realistas, nem procura causas muito explícitas ou claras para a explicação das suas personagens e situações.
ellauri090.html on line 259: A alma triste do poeta sobrenada Surullinen runoilijasielu pulikoi
ellauri090.html on line 282: Outra carta justifica uma certa complexidade no começo de seu relacionamento: "Sofreste tanto que até perdeste a consciência do teu império; estás pronta a obedecer; admiras-te de seres obedecida", o que é um mistério para os recentes estudiosos das correspondências do autor.
ellauri090.html on line 289: Depois do Catete, foram morar na casa nº 18 da Rua Cosme Velho (a residência mais famosa do casal), onde ficariam até a morte. Do nome da rua surgira o apelido Bruxo do Cosme Velho, dado por conta de um episódio onde Machado queimava suas cartas em um caldeirão, no sobrado da casa, quando a vizinhança certa vez o viu e gritou: "Olha o Bruxo do Cosme Velho!"
ellauri090.html on line 291: Machado de Assis e Carolina Augusta teriam vivido uma "vida conjugal perfeita" por 35 anos. Quando os amigos certa vez desconfiaram de uma traição por parte de Machado, seguiram-no e acabaram por descobrir que ele ia todas as tardes avistar a moça do quadro de A Dama do Livro (1882), de Roberto Fontana. Ao saberem que Machado não podia comprá-lo, deram-lhe de presente, o que o deixou particularmente feliz e grato.
ellauri090.html on line 294: obviousmag.org/desnudando/2016/12/23/A%20dama%20e%20o%20livro.jpg" width="100%">
ellauri090.html on line 303: Entre a temática na obra machadiana destaca-se a escravidão, os papéis sociais, a mulher, o ciúmes, a filosofia, como também a loucura, a solidão e a homossexualidade.
ellauri090.html on line 304: Ainda assim, aparecem já nos romances da segunda fase, sobretudo em Memórias Póstumas de Brás Cubas e em Quincas Borba, e mesmo em diversos contos, todos os elementos centrais trazidos de forma contundente pelo Realismo: a crítica social, sobretudo uma crítica dirigida à burguesia, a crítica à escravidão, ao uso do "homem pelo homem", a crítica a um sistema capitalista puramente interesseiro, financeiro, calculista do dinheiro pelo dinheiro e da mercantilização da vida, das relações, do casamento etc.
ellauri090.html on line 306: Os romances machadianos tratam frequentemente da escravidão sob o ponto de vista cínico do senhor de escravos, sempre criticando-o de forma oblíqua. Sobre a escravidão, Machado de Assis já havia tido uma experiência familiar, quer por seus avós paternos terem sido escravos, quer porque lia os jornais com anúncios de escravos fugitivos. Em seu tempo, a literatura que denunciava crenças etnocêntricas que posicionavam os negros no último grau da escala social era distorcida ou tolhida, de modo que este tema encontra uma grande expressividade na obra do autor.
ellauri090.html on line 308: A começar, as Memórias Póstumas de Brás Cubas narra o que seria uma das páginas de ficção mais perturbadoras já escritas sobre a psicologia do escravismo: o negro liberto compra seu próprio escravo para tirar sua desforra. (Kosto)
ellauri090.html on line 309: O fim da escravidão levara os aparelhos de ferro para a extinção, mas não levou a miséria e a pobreza. A grande parte do trabalho que era exercido pelos escravos, restava aos homens livres trabalhos mal remunerados e instáveis.
ellauri090.html on line 317: Dom Casmurro — que recebeu diversas interpretações ao longo do tempo — provavelmente é a obra machadiana que mais tenha sido interpretada de maneiras diferentes e vastas, destaque para a interpretação feminista de Helen Caldwell, mas a maioria dos críticos concordam que a obra, por um lado, retrata um brasileiro entre o liberalismo e as antigas tradições da monarquia escravocrata, e, por outro lado, destrói a imagem da amada, Capitu, que seria símbolo de um novo tempo e um risco ao status quo, por ser menina pobre, livre e inteligente (embora alguns poucos tenham afirmado que ela realmente o traiu);
ellauri090.html on line 319: e, por fim, Quincas Borba, cuja crítica mais explícita é ao cientificismo e à lei do mais forte e da seleção natural (muito famosa na época, por influência de Charles Darwin), através do filósofo Quincas Borba, teórico do fictício Humanitismo, onde o homem mais esperto recebe vantagem sobre o menos esperto nas sociedades.
ellauri090.html on line 323: Há críticos que também se focam nos temas e elementos de existencialismo, reflexão e afins que essas obras possuem. De fato, a trilogia foi muito influenciada por filósofos como Blaise Pascal, Montaigne e Schopenhauer.
ellauri090.html on line 325: Os acadêmicos notam cinco fundamentais enquadramentos em seus textos: "elementos clássicos" (equilíbrio, concisão, contenção lírica e expressional), "resíduos românticos" (narrativas convencionais ao enredo), "aproximações realistas" (atitude crítica, objetividade, temas contemporâneos), "procedimentos impressionistas" (recriação do passado através da memória), e "antecipações modernas" (o elíptico e o alusivo engajados à um tema que permite diversas leituras e interpretações).
ellauri090.html on line 327: Sua mensagem artística se dá por meio de uma interrupção na narrativa para dialogar com o leitor sobre a própria escritura do romance, ou sobre o caráter de determinado personagem ou sobre qualquer outro tema universal, numa organização metalinguística que constituía seu principal interesse como autor.
ellauri090.html on line 333: Chamamos aparência aquilo que aparece a nossos olhos, aquilo que primeiramente surge à observação; chamamos essência aquilo que consideramos a verdade, aquilo que é encoberto pela aparência. Mas o que tomamos por essência pode não ser mais do que outra aparência. O estilo machadiano focaliza as personagens de fora para dentro, vai descascando as pessoas, aparência atrás de aparência. Por isso, Machado é considerado grande "analista da alma humana".
ellauri090.html on line 335: Uma das características mais atraentes e refinadas de Machado de Assis é sua ironia, uma ironia que, embora chegue francamente ao humor em certas situações, tem geralmente uma sutileza que só a faz perceptível a leitores de sensibilidade já treinada em textos de alta qualidade. Essa ironia é a arma mais corrosiva da crítica machadiana dos comportamentos, dos costumes, das estruturas sociais. Machado a desenvolveu a partir de grandes escritores ingleses que apreciava e nos quais se inspirou (sobretudo o originalíssimo Lawrence Sterne, romancista do século XVIII). Na representação dos comportamentos humanos, a ironia de Machado de Assis se associa àquilo que é classificado como o seu grande poder 'analista da alma humana'.
ellauri090.html on line 337: Machado de Assis, como exímio intelectual e leitor, atribui a sua obra caráteres de arquétipos. Os acadêmicos também notam a constante presença do pessimismo. Suas últimas obras de ficção assumem uma postura desencantada da vida, da sociedade, e do homem. Crê-se que não acreditava em nenhum valor de seu tempo e nem mesmo em algum outro valor e que o importante para ele seria desmascarar o cinismo e a hipocrisia política e social.
ellauri090.html on line 343: Certos críticos encontram no personagem Bentinho de Dom Casmurro uma certa homossexualidade voltada a seu amigo Escobar. Como no trecho:
ellauri090.html on line 346: Citam que trata-se de uma "homossexualidade encoberta".
ellauri090.html on line 350: Suas mulheres são "capazes de conduzir a ação, apesar do predomínio da trama romanesca não ter se esvaziado." As personagens femininas de Machado de Assis, ao contrário das mulheres de outros românticos — que faziam a heroína dependente de outras figuras e indisposta à ação principal na narrativa — são extremamente objetivas e possuem força de caráter.
ellauri090.html on line 364: aqui venho e virei, pobre querida, tulen tähän istumaan, rakas parka,
ellauri090.html on line 383: Kanadalainen komedia (?) sarja Schitt's Creek on napannut kaikki palkinnot, Emmyn, Oskarit, Venlan, mitä niitä nyt olikaan, mitä Hoblan Malin Slotte ei voi tajuta. Sehän on kömpelösti ylinäytelty paskaturaus, trailerista päätellen, jonka "huumori" on enintään Reinikaisen tasoa. Tai Mämmilästä. "I love your complexion" sanoo newcomer white-trash ämmä afrokanadalaiselle. Mämmilässäkin oli hassu mutta kiltti kotisomali. Mixi näin? Mistä ihmeestä voi olla kysymys?
ellauri090.html on line 391: Vizi hei mä vedin ton ihan hatusta! Mut JUST SIITÄ siinä onkin kysymys! Arvasin ihan oikein! Lusmuista pohatoista tosiaan tulee tosi yritteliäitä ja eipä aikaakaan kun ne on taas vaurastumispolulla. Alexis (joka on kyllä homo, mutta sekin on nyt jo ookoo prime time teeveessä) oppii rehellisen (tai no, tuottoisan) työn arvon jne. jne. Tää kaikki selvisi vaan treilereitä kazomalla. Tää sarja on sellasta riches to rags and back to riches tarinaa jota jauhettiin jo 1900-luvun lopulla kun pikku Wallu kazoi televisiota puristellen tennispalloa. Se kyllä tykkäisi. Pilkkanauru pois, kääritäänpä hihat ja ansaizemaan ensimmäistä miljoonaa kengänkiillottajana kuten nuori Roope, tai sooda jerkkinä kuten Bob Heinleinin Kip.
ellauri092.html on line 88: He became very settled and successful in ministry in Chicago. He sat on at least ten separate committees while at the same time fighting the gall of Cod to step out as an itinerant Evangelist. Cash flow was becoming mechanical. In June 1871 a great burden came upon two older ladies in his congregation to pray that he would receive the baptism of the Holy Ghost and fire. These two hot ladies became very obvious to Moody as they sat on the front pew and prayed as he preached. When he enquired about their praying they informed him that they needed the power of the Spirit.
ellauri092.html on line 90: At first Moody could satisfy himself so that was ok. But the persistence of these ladies led him to meet and pray with them. They poured out their hearts asking Cod to fill them with His servant's Spirits. From that day a deep hunger and thirst gripped Moody. By October he was in agony for sole as he prayed and munched Cod for the promised gift. At times he would roll on the floor in agony with the ladies and in tears with this singular prayer to be baptised in the Holy Mackerel grilled with fire. This was a wrestle between his willy and Cod’s willy. It was that very month that Chicago burnt to the ground by ghost fire. All his works, efforts and organizational committees literally went up in a blaze. Shortly after this while passing through New York on his way to Britain the second time Cod heard his prayer. As he walked the streets his willy bent before Cod's, the power of the Golden Horde fell upon him, the Ford drew near and revealed Himself to be His servant. Moody rushed to a friend’s house and asked for rum and to be left alone. Hour after hour he bathed in the presence of Cod as the Holy Mackerels filled him. So strong was this that he cried out to Cod to stay in His hand lest He die. He was filled with the joy of the Gourd. When he left that house it was in the power of the fire, just like Chicago the other day.
ellauri092.html on line 104: During the summer of 1883 he returned home to count the revenue but was back again; first to Ireland and then London in November. For the next 8 months he held his greatest meetings yet in the capital. Many of his best new labourers were the pervert convicts from 1875. This campaign sealed the future destiny of many young men who would later go to the admission collection field. It was not long after his death in 1899 that his sermons were second only in demand to Pilgrim’s Progress and were printed right across the ad pages of the Boston Globe.
ellauri092.html on line 127: mefodistit 80M/12M 1738 Wesley Oxford
Savannah
Lontoo Sähköshokki
Kingdomtide Plagiointi
Homofobia Puolijäykkä N/A
ellauri092.html on line 184: In 1914–1917 many Methodist ministers made strong pleas for world peace. President Woodrow Wilson (a Presbyterian), promised "a war to end all wars." Tästä teki sitten pilaa italialainen nobelistirunoilija Eugenio Montale, joka on aika lailla kyllä never heard. Se oli liian hermeettinen vedotaxeen kansan makuun. Oikeastaan sen ei olis kuulunutkaan saada noobelia kerze oli pessimisti, muze oli sentään antifasisti, joista sodan aikana lie Italiassa ollut pula. Eli jälleen kerran sellanen poliittinen virkanimitys. Montale oli kantava voima runoilijaryhmässä, joka kutsui itseään Hermeettiseksi seuraksi. Ryhmä tuotti täysin epäloogisia runoja, jotka kuvastivat absurdia ajatusta Sodasta, joka päättää kaikki sodat.
ellauri092.html on line 186: In the 1930s many Methodists favored isolationist policies. Thus in 1936, Methodist Bishop James Baker, of the San Francisco Conference, released a poll of ministers showing 56% opposed warfare. When war came in 1941, the vast majority of Methodists strongly supported the national war effort, but there were also a few (673) conscientious objectors.
ellauri092.html on line 192: Whereas most American Methodist worship is modeled after the Anglican Communion´s Book of Common Prayer, a unique feature was the once practiced observance of the season of Kingdomtide, which encompasses the last thirteen weeks before Advent, thus dividing the long season after Pentecost into two discrete segments. During Kingdomtide, Methodist liturgy emphasizes charitable work and alleviating the suffering of the poor. This practice was last seen in The Book of Worship for Church and Home by The United Methodist Church, 1965, and The Book of Hymns, 1966. While some congregations and their pastors might still follow this old calendar, the Revised Common Lectionary, with its naming and numbering of Days in the Calendar of the Church Year, is used widely. However, congregations who strongly identify with their African American roots and tradition would not usually follow the Revised Common Lectionary.
ellauri092.html on line 194: Adding more complexity to the mix, there are United Methodist congregations who orient their worship to the "free" church tradition, so particular liturgies are not observed. The United Methodist Book of Worship and The Hymns of the United Methodist Church are voluntarily followed in varying degrees. Such churches employ the liturgy and rituals therein as optional resources, but their use is not mandatory.
ellauri092.html on line 213: Baptists, as their very name implies, adhere to baptism. But not just any baptism – Baptists are more specific on the issue. Baptist subscribe to credo baptism by immersion. That means that they believe in baptism of a confessing believer by immersion into water. They reject pedobaptism and other modes of baptism (sprinkling, pouring, etc.). This is one distinctive that holds true for nearly all Baptist denominations and churches. They are Baptists, after all!
ellauri092.html on line 229: In contrast, Baptists traditionally hold to only baptism by immersion and only for one who is confessing faith in Jesus Christ for themselves, and old enough to responsibly do so. They reject pedobaptism and other modes such as a sprinkling or pouring or pedophilia as unbiblical. Baptists normally insist upon baptism for membership in a local church.
ellauri092.html on line 253: Baptists are traditionally mixed on the Calvinism-Arminianism debate. Few would call themselves true Arminians, and most Baptists would probably self-describe as modified (or moderate) Calvinists – or 4 point Calvinists, rejecting especially the doctrine of Limited Atonement. In contrast to Methodists, most all Baptists believe in the eternal security of a Christian, though many hold to a view of this that is very different from the Reformed doctrine of the Perseverance of the Saints.
ellauri092.html on line 255: There has been a resurgence of Reformed theology among Baptists recently, with some major Baptist seminaries teaching a more classic and robust Reformed theology. There are also many Reformed Baptist churches which would enthusiastically subscribe to Calvinism.
ellauri092.html on line 271: William Boardman worked closely with Robert Pearsall Smith, whose wife Hannah Whitall Smith, a Quaker, became well known in the movement for her belief in “quietism”. Quietism teaches that “sinless perfection” is attainable in this life and comes from inner quietness or meditative contemplation that is believed to allow God to work as all human effort ceases. Remind you of something today?
ellauri092.html on line 295: …the problems in the Keswick theology are severe. Because of its corrupt roots, Keswick errs seriously in its ecumenical tendencies, theological shallowness or even incomprehensibility, neglect of the role of the Word of God in sanctification, shallow views of sin and perfectionism, support of some tenants of Pelagianism and semi-Pelagianism, improper divorce of justification and sanctification, confusion about the nature of saving repentance, denial that God’s sanctifying grace always frees Christians from bondage to sin and changes them, failure to warn strongly about the possibility of those who are professedly Christians being unregenerate, support for an unbiblical pneumatology, belief in the continuation of the sign gifts, maintenance of significant exegetical errors, distortion of the positions and critiques of opponents of the errors of Keswick, misrepresentation of the nature of faith in sanctification, support for a kind of Quietism, and denial that God actually renews the nature of the believer to make him more personally holy. Keswick theology differs in important ways from the Biblical doctrine of sanctification. It should be rejected.
ellauri092.html on line 322: Holiness is thus not so much an abstract or mystic idea, as a regulative principle in the everyday lives of men and women. Holiness is thus attained not by flight from the world, nor by monk-like renunciation of human relationships of family or station, but by the spirit in which we fulfill the obligations of life in its simplest and commonest details: in this way – by doing justly, loving mercy, and walking humbly with our God in everyday life. Or laying down prostrate knickers down when the knobbly heads of the elders tell us so. Kitty loves me yes I know, cause his purring tells me so. Is that there a test tube in your pockezes, or are you just so glad to see me?
ellauri092.html on line 340: Too many leaders and authors are tempting Christians to go “beyond,” obtaining “more” than the Bible says we have a right to expect. There is no “second blessing” for the Christian, unless you consider the life after this one the actual second blessing when we will be separated from our sin nature forever, we will see Him as He is and we will be like Him. Then we will know in certainty as we are known.
ellauri092.html on line 396: Birthdate: October 03, 1906
ellauri092.html on line 428: But the city that scares me the most is East St. Louis, Illinois. Unlike other American cities, there are NO nice parts of town. In East St. Louis, you’ll have the greatest chance of becoming the victim of a violent crime! They lead in the categories of overall violent crime rate, murder rate, aggravated assault rate, and robbery rate. Nearby St. Louis is 2nd when it comes to violent crime and murder, and among the top five in aggravated assault and robbery. But East St. Louis takes the cake!
ellauri092.html on line 475: Wilhelm Robert Breitenstein (1848-1933), Catharina Krohnin poika, jonka biologinen isä ei ole tiedossa, varttui Suomessa ja jäi tänne. Vuonna 1897 hän osti Kiiskilän kartanon, jolloin se palasi Abrahamin jälkeläisten haltuun parin vuosikymmenen ajaksi. Wilhelmin jälkeläisiä ovat mm. Suomen entinen YK-suurlähettiläs Wilhelm Breitenstein (1933-2005) sekä ministeri Alexander Stubb (1968-). Sit on se mun armeija"kaveri" Breitenstein jolta hukkui lapsi Nauvon rannassa.
ellauri092.html on line 514: She haes a maister's degree frae the Theatre Academy o Finland. Krohn wis marriet 18 years tae the movie director Wille Mäkelä. Krohn is the niece o the Finnish author an journalist Kaarina Goldberg. Kaarina Goldberg (born 28 Januar 1956) is a Finnish author an jurnalist who lives in Vienna. She is best kent for her childer's beuks Petokylän Ilona Ilves, Rämäpäinen robotti an her comic strip Senni ja Safira in the Finnish newspaper Eläkeläiset.
ellauri092.html on line 546: Joku Hiljan idoleista sanoi että sen sukupolven oli vietävä lähetystyö päätöxeen. Fidan Tellus-lähetyskonferenssin juhlapuhuja, Minnesotasta kotoisin oleva nuori Rob Ketterling on samaa mieltä vuonna 2021. Rob ei nähnyt USA:n helluntailiikkeellä tulevaisuutta. Hän aikoi erota liikkeestä ja aloittaa jotain uutta.
ellauri092.html on line 563: Kuvassa on Rob Ketterling on Tellus-konferenssin pääpuhuja
ellauri093.html on line 88: (Bob Zimmermann / Jimi Hendrix / Vanity Fair)
ellauri093.html on line 96: Moody oli Mottin esikuva. Se matki Moodya kuin motivational speaker Tony Robbins guruaan. Motivational speaker on saarnaaja jonka epäjumala on mammona. Saarnaaja on motivational speaker jonka votiivi on joku meemi tai virtuaalivaluutta. Mott ja Moody molemmat oli valoisia keswickiläisiä kuten Wilhokin. Mott aloitti mefodistina ja oli businessminded som fan. Kaikenlainen raha kelpas, pecunia non olet. Se hääri hmhkkinä näkymättömän verkon keskellä kuin Riitta Roth.
ellauri093.html on line 102: Mott oli niin jenkki ettei se edes ize tajunnut. Sehän oli mielestään vaan globalisti. WW1:n jälkeen voittajat förbi sakuilta siirtomaamissiot. Mott koitti lohdutella sakuveljiä samalla kun veljeili ryssille. Sakut suuttuivat.
ellauri093.html on line 128: For the next month, the seven toured the University campuses of England and Scotland, holding meetings for the students. Queen Victoria was pleased to receive their booklet containing The Cambridge Seven's testimonies. The record of their departure is recorded in "The Evangelisation of the World: A Missionary Band". It became a national bestseller. Their influence extended to America where it led to the formation of Robert Wilder's Student Volunteer Movement.
ellauri093.html on line 132: Though their time together was brief, they helped catapult the China Inland Mission from obscurity to "almost embarrassing prominence", and their work helped to inspire many recruits for the CIM and other mission societies. In 1885, when the Seven first arrived in China, the CIM had 163 missionaries; this had doubled by 1890 and reached some 800 by 1900, which represented one-third of the entire Protestant missionary force.
ellauri093.html on line 178: At a time when Britain was in need of morale-boosting generalship, Wingate attracted British Prime Minister Winston Churchill's attention with a self-reliant aggressive philosophy of war, and was given resources to stage a large-scale operation. The last Chindit campaign may have determined the outcome of the Battle of Kohima, although the offensive into India by the Japanese may have occurred because Wingate's first operation had demonstrated the possibility of moving through the jungle. In practice, both Japanese and British forces suffered severe supply problems and malnutrition.
ellauri093.html on line 203: The best-known and oldest distinction between Open and Exclusive assemblies is in the nature of relationships among their local churches. Open Brethren assemblies function as networks of like-minded independent local churches. Exclusive Brethren generally feel an obligation to recognize and adhere to the disciplinary actions of other associated assemblies.
ellauri093.html on line 205: Conversely, Open assemblies aware of that disciplining would not automatically feel a binding obligation to support it, treating each case on its own merit. Reasons for being put under discipline by both the Open and Exclusive Brethren include disseminating gross Scriptural or doctrinal error or being involved in unscriptural behavior. Being accused of illegal financial dealings may also result in being put under discipline.
ellauri093.html on line 372: Esimerkkinä kadehdittavan kunnollisesta musiikista Kari soittaa pätkän Wagneria. Wagner oli nazien lemmikki ja kova antisemitisti, vaikka saattoi olla izekin juutalainen tuntemattomaxi jääneen isän puolelta. Loppumetreillä Wagneria kiinnosti Arthur de Gobineaun kexeliäs ajatus, että länsimaiden perikato johtuu vaaleanpunaisten arjalaisten sekaantumisesta ruskeampiin värimuunnoxiin. Nojaa. Jotain likaa on jokaisessa siassa kun jaxaa kaivella. Älä jaxa huutaa Seija takaata.
ellauri093.html on line 714: Oli izestään selviö että rovasti Tarkkanen pitäisi suomenkielisen puheen ja Pelle Peloton ruozinkielisen. Hilja näyttäisi kuvia Palestiinasta äsken ostetulla globoskoopilla. Riehakasta menoa oli luvassa.
ellauri093.html on line 716: Globoskoopit ja megaskoopit olivat niin uudenaikaisia että Dick ei ollut ennen nähnyt moisia.
ellauri093.html on line 905: FOR MANY years it has been my privilege to teach Jewish young men the way of salvation. Naturally I began by showing them Christ in the Old Testament, how our heavenly Father began to teach His young children in object lessons and how their Messiah was foreshadowed in type and prophecy.
ellauri093.html on line 907: The Jewish form of worship is well worthy of the study of Christian theologians. It is not the object of this book. It contains only simple heart-to-heart talks to God's children about our precious Redeemer and how we can follow and serve Him best in our daily lives.
ellauri094.html on line 213: Nebuchadnezzar's siege of Jerusalem, his capture of King Jeconiah, his appointment of Zedekiah in his place, and the plundering of the city in 597 BCE are corroborated by a passage in the Babylonian Chronicles, p.293.
ellauri094.html on line 219: Nebuchadnezzar and the Babylonian forces returned in 588/586 BCE and rampaged through Judah, leaving clear archaeological evidence of destruction in many towns and settlements there. Clay ostraca from this period, referred to as the Lachish letters, were discovered during excavations; one, which was probably written to the commander at Lachish from an outlying base, describes how the signal fires from nearby towns were disappearing: "And may (my lord) be apprised that we are watching for the fire signals of Lachish according to all the signs which my lord has given, because we cannot see Azeqah." Archaeological finds from Jerusalem testify that virtually the whole city within the walls was burnt to rubble in 587 BCE and utterly destroyed.
ellauri094.html on line 223: The Cyrus Cylinder (not to be confused with Joakim von Anka´s cylinder hat), an ancient tablet on which is written a declaration in the name of Cyrus referring to restoration of temples and repatriation of exiled peoples, has often been taken as corroboration of the authenticity of the biblical decrees attributed to Cyrus, but other scholars point out that the cylinder's text is specific to Babylon and Mesopotamia and makes no mention of Judah or Jerusalem. Professor Lester L. Grabbe asserted that the "alleged decree of Cyrus" regarding Judah, "cannot be considered authentic", but that there was a "general policy of allowing deportees to return and to re-establish cult sites". He also stated that archaeology suggests that the return was a "trickle" taking place over decades, rather than a single event.
ellauri094.html on line 229: The exilic period was a rich one for Hebrew literature. Biblical depictions of the exile include Book of Jeremiah 39–43 (which saw the exile as a lost opportunity); the final section of 2 Kings (which portrays it as the temporary end of history); 2 Chronicles (in which the exile is the "Sabbath of the land"); and the opening chapters of Ezra, which records its end. Other works from or about the exile include the stories in Daniel 1–6, Susanna, Bel and the Dragon, the "Story of the Three Youths" (1 Esdras 3:1–5:6), and the books of Tobit and Book of Judith. The Book of Lamentations arose from the Babylonian captivity. The final redaction of the Pentateuch took place in the Persian period following the exile,:310and the Priestly source, one of its main sources, is primarily a product of the post-exilic period when the former Kingdom of Judah had become the Persian province of Yehud.
ellauri094.html on line 231: In the Hebrew Bible, the captivity in Babylon is presented as a punishment for idolatry and disobedience to Yahweh in a similar way to the presentation of Israelite slavery in Egypt followed by deliverance. The Babylonian Captivity had a number of serious effects on Judaism and Jewish culture. For example, the current Hebrew alphabet was adopted during this period, replacing the Paleo-Hebrew alphabet.
ellauri094.html on line 290: Persians conquer Babylon (October)
ellauri094.html on line 354: One should be skeptical of whether this is a Bible contradiction given the Skeptic Annotated Bible’s track record of inaccurately handling the Bible. See the many examples of their error which we have responded to in this post: Collection of Posts Responding to Bible Contradictions. Of course that does not take away the need to respond to this claim of a contradiction, which is what the remainder of this post will do. But this observation should caution us to slow down and look more closely at the passages cited by the Skeptic Annotated Bible to see if they interpreted the passages properly to support their conclusion that it is a Bible contradiction.
ellauri094.html on line 378: We shouldn’t miss that worldviews are at play even with the skeptic’s objection to Christianity. The worldview of the author of the Skeptic Annotated Bible actually doesn’t even allow for such a thing as the law of non-contradiction to be meaningful and intelligible. In other words for him to try to disprove the Bible by pointing out that there’s a Bible contradiction doesn’t even make sense within his own worldview. Check out our post “Skeptic Annotated Bible Author’s Self-Defeating Worldview.” Read also Stanford's bit on contradictory beliefs here. Lisää aiheesta:
ellauri094.html on line 533: And robes of shame. Mekot korvissa.
ellauri095.html on line 53: The initial “I” focuses attention on the speaker, but the explicit application of the lesson of the Book of Nature to him does not begin until the line “My heart in hiding/stirred for a bird” at the conclusion of the octet. One biographical interpretation of this line is that he was hiding from fulfilling his ambitions to be a great painter and poet. Instead of ostentatiously pursuing fame in that way, wearing his heart on his sleeve, he had chosen to be the “hidden man of the heart” (1 Peter 3:4), quietly pursuing the imitation of Christ. As Hopkins put it, Christ’s “hidden life at Nazareth is the great help to faith for us who must live more or less an obscure, constrained, and unsuccessful life.”
ellauri095.html on line 86: Gerard Manley Hopkins SJ (28 July 1844 – 8 June 1889) was an English poet and Jesuit priest, whose posthumous fame established him among the leading Victorian poets. His manipulation of prosody – particularly his concept of sprung rhythm – established him as an innovative writer of verse, as did his technique of praising God through vivid use of imagery and nature. Only after his death did Robert Bridges begin to publish a few of Hopkins's mature poems in anthologies, hoping to prepare the way for wider acceptance of his style. By 1930 his work was recognised as one of the most original literary accomplishments of his century. It had a marked influence on such leading 20th-century poets as T. S. Eliot, Dylan Thomas, W. H. Auden, Stephen Spender and Cecil Day-Lewis.
ellauri095.html on line 107: The term Uranian was quickly adopted by English-language advocates of homosexual emancipation in the Victorian era, such as Edward Carpenter and John Addington Symonds, who used it to describe a comradely love that would bring about true democracy, uniting the "estranged ranks of society" and breaking down class and gender barriers. Oscar Wilde wrote to Robert Ross in an undated letter (?18 February 1898): "To have altered my life would have been to have admitted that Uranian love is ignoble. I hold it to be noble—more noble than other forms."
ellauri095.html on line 111: The word itself alludes to Plato's Symposium, a discussion on Eros (love). In this dialog, Pausanias distinguishes between two types of love, symbolised by two different accounts of the birth of Aphrodite, the goddess of love. In one, she was born of Uranus (the heavens), a birth in which "the female has no part". This Uranian Aphrodite is associated with a noble love for male youths, and is the source of Ulrichs's term Urning. Another account has Aphrodite as the daughter of Zeus and Dione, and this Aphrodite is associated with a common love which "is apt to be of women as well as of youths, and is of the body rather than of the soul". After Dione, Ulrichs gave the name Dioning to men who are sexually attracted to women. However, unlike Plato's account of male love, Ulrichs understood male Urnings to be essentially feminine, and male Dionings to be masculine in nature.
ellauri095.html on line 129: Hopkins studied classics at Balliol College, Oxford (1863–1867). He began his time in Oxford as a keen socialite and prolific poet, but seems to have alarmed himself with resulting changes in his behaviour. There he forged a lifelong friendship with Robert Bridges (later Poet Laureate of the United Kingdom), which would be important to his development as a poet and in establishing his posthumous acclaim.
ellauri095.html on line 139: According to John Bayley, "All his life Hopkins was haunted by the sense of personal bankruptcy and impotence, the straining of 'time's eunuch' with no more to 'spend'... " a sense of inadequacy, graphically expressed in his last sonnets. Toward the end of his life, Hopkins suffered several long bouts of depression. His "terrible sonnets" struggle with problems of religious doubt. He described them to Bridges as "the thin gleanings of a long weary while."
ellauri095.html on line 149: During his lifetime, Hopkins published few poems. It was only through the efforts of Robert Bridges that his works were seen.
ellauri095.html on line 151: Robertkin on siis suspekti.
ellauri095.html on line 159: He influenced such poets as W.H. Auden, Dylan Thomas, Theodore Roethke, Elizabeth Bishop, John Berryman, Robert Lowell, Ted Hughes, Sylvia Plath, Denise Levertov, and the Nobel Laureate Seamus Heaney. In the 1920s and 30s, he was a darling of the British and American “New Critics” who prized and probed his poems’ rich “texture.”
ellauri095.html on line 161: Timothy d´Arch Smith, antiquarian bookseller, ascribes to Hopkins suppressed erotic impulses which he views as taking on a degree of specificity after Hopkins met Robert Bridges´s distant cousin, friend, and fellow Etonian Digby Mackworth Dolben, "a Christian Uranian". Ei siis Plutosta kuten Heinleinin matonaamat.
ellauri095.html on line 163: Robert Martin asserts that when Hopkins first met Dolben, on Dolben´s 17th birthday in Oxford in February 1865, it "was, quite simply, the most momentous emotional event of his undergraduate years, probably of his entire life." According to Robert Martin, "Hopkins was completely taken with Dolben, who was nearly four years his junior, and his private journal for confessions the following year proves how absorbed he was in imperfectly suppressed erotic thoughts of him." Martin also considers it "probable that Hopkins would have been deeply shocked at real sexual intimacy with another guy."
ellauri095.html on line 167: Hopkins composed two poems about Dolben, "Where art thou friend" and "The Beginning of the End". Robert Bridges, who edited the first edition of Dolben's poems as well as Hopkins's, cautioned that the second poem "must never be printed," though Bridges himself included it in the first edition (1918). Another indication of the nature of his feelings for Dolben is that Hopkins's high Anglican confessor seems to have forbidden him to have any contact with Dolben except by letter. Hopkins never saw Dolben again after the latter's short visit to Oxford during which they met, and any continuation of their relationship was abruptly ended by Dolben's drowning two years later in June 1867. Hopkins's feeling for Dolben seems to have cooled by that time, but he was nonetheless greatly affected by his death. "Ironically, fate may have bestowed more through Dolben's death than it could ever have bestowed through longer life ... for many of Hopkins's best poems – impregnated with an elegiac longing for Dolben, his lost beloved and his muse – were the result." Hopkins's relationship with Dolben is explored in the novel The Hopkins Conundrum.
ellauri095.html on line 169: Some of Hopkins´s poems, such as The Bugler´s First Communion and Epithalamion, arguably embody homoerotic themes, although the second poem was arranged by Robert Bridges from extant fragments.
ellauri095.html on line 171: Hopkins chose the austere and restrictive life of a Jesuit and was gloomy at times. His biographer Robert Bernard Martin notes that "the life expectancy of a man becoming a novice at twenty-one was twenty-three more years rather than the forty years of males of the same age in the general population."
ellauri095.html on line 178: The aim of our research was never to spread more homophobia, but to demonstrate to an international audience how the life expectancy of gay and bisexual men can be estimated from limited vital statistics data. In our paper, we demonstrated that in a major Canadian centre, life expectancy at age 20 years for gay and bisexual men is 8 to 21 years less than for all men. If the same pattern of mortality continued, we estimated that nearly half of gay and bisexual men currently aged 20 years would not reach their 65th birthday. Under even the most liberal assumptions, gay and bisexual men in this urban centre were experiencing a life expectancy similar to that experienced by men in Canada in the year 1871. In contrast, if we were to repeat this analysis today the life expectancy of gay and bisexual men would be greatly improved. Deaths from HIV infection have declined dramatically in this population since 1996. As we have previously reported there has been a threefold decrease in mortality in Vancouver as well as in other parts of British Columbia.
ellauri095.html on line 184: Hopkins was a supporter of linguistic purism in English. In an 1882 letter to Robert Bridges, Hopkins writes: "It makes one weep to think what English might have been; for in spite of all that Shakespeare and Milton have done... no beauty in a language can make up for want of purity." He took time to learn Old English, which became a major influence on his writing. In the same letter to Bridges he calls Old English "a vastly superior thing to what we have now."
ellauri095.html on line 196: Inkscape, for Hopkins, is the charged essence, the absolute singularity that gives each created thing its being; instress is both the energy that holds the inscape together and the process by which this inscape is perceived by an observer. We instress the inscape of a tulip, Hopkins would say, when we appreciate the particular delicacy of its petals, when we are enraptured by its specific, inimitable shade of pink.
ellauri095.html on line 199: No no, he usually sought the distinctively unifying design, the “returning” or recurrent pattern, the internal “network” of structural relationships which clearly and unmistakably integrates or scapes an object or set of objects and thus reveals the presence of integrating laws throughout nature and a divine unifying force or “stress” in this world.
ellauri095.html on line 203: The suggestion of metaphysical significance is obvious in an 1874 note by Hopkins on waves: “The laps of running foam striking the sea-wall double on themselves and return in nearly the same order and shape in which they came. This is mechanical reflection and is the same as optical: indeed all nature is mechanical, but then it is not seen that mechanics contain that which is beyond mechanics.”
ellauri095.html on line 209: The typical Hopkins drawing is what Ruskin called the “outline drawing”; as Ruskin put it, “without any wash of colour, such an outline is the most valuable of all means for obtaining such memoranda of any scene as may explain to another person, or record for yourself, what is most important in its features.” Many such practical purposes for drawing were advanced by Ruskin, but his ultimate purpose was to unite science, art, and religion.
ellauri095.html on line 218: Hopkins chose the austere and restrictive life of a Jesuit and was gloomy at times. His biographer Robert Bernard Martin notes that "the life expectancy of a man becoming a novice at twenty-one was twenty-three more years rather than the forty years of males of the same age in the general population."
ellauri095.html on line 220: The brilliant student who had left Oxford with first-class honours failed his final theology exam. This almost certainly meant that despite his ordination in 1877, Hopkins would not progress in the order. In 1877 he wrote God's Grandeur, an array of sonnets that included "The Starlight Night". He finished "The Windhover" only a few months before his ordination. His life as a Jesuit trainee, though rigorous, isolated and sometimes unpleasant, at least had some stability; the uncertain and varied work after ordination was even harder on his sensibilities. In October 1877, not long after completing "The Sea and the Skylark" and only a month after his ordination, Hopkins took up duties as sub-minister and teacher at Mount St Mary's College near Sheffield. In July 1878 he became curated at the Jesuit church in Mount Street, London, and in December that of St Aloysius's Church, Oxford, then moving to Manchester, Liverpool and Glasgow. While ministering in Oxford, he became a founding member of The Cardinal Newman Boozing Society, established in 1878 for Catholic members of the University of Oxford. He taught Greek and Latin at Mount St Mary's College, Sheffield, and Stonyhurst College, Lancashire.
ellauri095.html on line 227: Several issues led to a melancholic state and restricted his poetic inspiration in his last five years. His workload was heavy. He disliked living in Dublin, away from England and friends. He was disappointed at how far the city had fallen from its Georgian elegance of the previous century. His general health suffered and his eyesight began to fail. He felt confined and dejected. As a devout Jesuit, he found himself in an artistic dilemma. To subdue an egotism that he felt would violate the humility required by his religious position, he decided never to publish his poems. But Hopkins realised that any true poet requires an audience for criticism and encouragement. This conflict between his religious obligations and his poetic talent made him feel he had failed at both.
ellauri095.html on line 234: On 18 January 1866, Hopkins composed his most ascetic poem, The Habit of Perfection. On 23 January, he included poetry in a list of things to be given up for Lent. In July, he decided to become a Roman Catholic and travelled to Birmingham in September to consult the leader of the Oxford converts, John Henry Newman. Newman received him into the Roman Catholic Church on 21 October 1866.
ellauri095.html on line 240: In September 1868 Hopkins began his Jesuit novitiate at Manresa House, Roehampton, under the guidance of Alfred Weld. Two years later he moved to St Mary´s Hall, Stonyhurst, for philosophical studies, taking vows of poverty, chastity and obedience on 8 September 1870. He felt that his interest in poetry had stopped him devoting himself wholly to religion. However, on reading Duns Scotus in 1872, he saw how the two need not conflict.
ellauri095.html on line 256: Christina Georgina Rossetti (5 December 1830 – 29 December 1894) was an English poet who wrote romantic, devotional, and children´s poems. "Goblin Market" and "Remember" remain famous. She also wrote the words of two Christmas carols well known in the UK: "In the Bleak Midwinter", later set by Gustav Holst and by Harold Darke, and "Love Came Down at Christmas", also set by Darke and by other composers. She was little sister (2 years junior) of the artist and poet Dante Gabriel Rossetti and features in several of his paintings.
ellauri095.html on line 258: In the later decades of her life, Ms. Rossetti suffered from Graves' disease, diagnosed in 1872, suffering a near-fatal attack in the early 1870s. Graves' disease, also known as toxic diffuse goiter, is an autoimmune disease that affects the thyroid. It frequently results in and is the most common cause of hyperthyroidism. It also often results in an enlarged thyroid. Signs and symptoms of hyperthyroidism may include irritability, muscle weakness, sleeping problems, a fast heartbeat, poor tolerance of heat, diarrhea and unintentional weight loss. Other symptoms may include thickening of the skin on the shins, known as pretibial myxedema, and eye bulging, a condition caused by Graves´ ophthalmopathy. About 25 to 80% of people with the condition develop eye problems.
ellauri095.html on line 262: Broidi Danten varhaiseen runouteen vaikuttivat John Keats ja William Blake . Hänen myöhemmälle runoudelleen oli ominaista ajatuksen ja tunteen kieronlainen yhdistäminen, erityisesti hänen sonettisarjassaan The House of Life. Runous ja kuva kietoutuvat tiiviisti Rossettin teoksiin. Hän kirjoitti usein sonetteja kuviensa oheen, jotka ulottuvat elokuviin Neitsyt Marian tyttönen (1849) ja Astarte Syriaca (1877), samalla kun hän loi taidetta havainnollistamaan runoja, kuten kuuluisan runoilijan Christina Rossettin , hänen sisarensa, Goblin Market.
ellauri095.html on line 414: And anal tract obstructed by hydrocele; Ja anus ummella vesikivespussin takia,
ellauri095.html on line 437: Rossettin huolet keskittyivät vuonna 1871, kun Nykyaika-lehti julkaisi Thomas Maitlandin (Robert Buchanan) pseudonyymiartikkelin, joka hyökkäsi Rossettia vastaan aistillisen himon runoilijakoulun johtajana: "hän on lihallinen kauttaaltaan, hiusten juurista varpaiden latvaan." Vaikka se oli pienen runoilijan työ, Buchananin arvostelu järkytti Rossettia. Rossetti vastasi artikkelilla Athenaeumissa "Kavala kriitikkokoulu", ja Buchanan laajensi näkemyksensä julkaistavaksi omalla nimellään keväällä 1872 nimellä "Lihaisa runoilijakoulu ja muita päivän ilmiöitä."
ellauri095.html on line 440: Viktoriaanisen varovaisuuden ilmapiirissä ei ollut kohtuutonta pelätä vahinkoa tällaisesta pamfletista, vaikka useimmat Rossettin runollisista edeltäjistä ja aikalaisista, Tennyson, Robert Browning, Elizabeth Barrett Browning, Morris ja Swinburne, olivat selviytyneet huonommista arvosteluista. Melkein kaikki Rossettin vuoden 1870 runojen arvostelut olivat suotuisia, ja kirja oli myyty epätavallisen hyvin (neljä painosta vuonna 1870). Suoraan sanottuna Rossetti saattoi myös pelätä julkista julkisuutta suhteestaan Jane Morrisin kanssa. Joka tapauksessa, lähdön jälkeen Kelmscottista 2. kesäkuuta 1872 Rossetti kärsi täydellisestä henkisestä romahduksesta. Hänet vietiin ystävänsä tohtori Thomas Gordon Haken Roehamptonin kotiin, missä hän yritti tehdä itsemurhan (kuten Lizzie) yliannostuksella laudanumia. Sitten hän vietti kesän ystävien ja työtovereiden hoidossa. Vuoteen 1873 mennessä Rossettin runollinen tuottavuus oli kuitenkin elpynyt, ja hän sai valmiiksi seitsemän yksittäissonettia ja kaksoissonettin "The Sun's Shame". Tämän ajanjakson sonetit ovat melankolisia ja kaikuvat aika ontoilta, mutta tutut vaimennetun intohimon teemat ovat alkaneet sulautua uusiin – taiteen luomiseen ja kuolemattomuuden vihjauksiin. Rossetti jatkoi myös maalaamista tasaisesti käyttäen Jane Morrisia mallina, vaikka hiän olikin poissa yhä useammin. Rossetti lähti lopulta Kelmscottista, jossa he olivat yöpyneet yhdessä, Chelseaan. Siellä hänen terveytensä heikkeni edelleen.
ellauri095.html on line 442: Janen kirjeet 1870-luvun puolivälistä osoittavat hänen oman terveytensä heikkenemisen; hänenkin oli vaikea istua ja hän pyörtyili. Rossettin fobiat ja yhä vainoharhaisemmat epäilyt ovat saattaneet myös olla yhä epäedullisemmin vastakkain William Morrisin energian, vaurauden, hellä hyvän tahdon ja tarkkaavaisen huolen kanssa Morrisin lapsista.
ellauri095.html on line 471: Talk of sublimation. Näki Beatricen kalsareita pakkasella kuivumassa, niistä nousi härmistystä, Danten pelihousuissa nousi vastavaikutus. Dante sijoitti suklaaosaston alimpaan helvettiin, todennäköisesti homofoobisena.
ellauri095.html on line 473: Nancy J. Chodorow states that homophobia can be viewed as a method of protection of male masculinity. Various psychoanalytic theories explain homophobia as a threat to an individual´s own same-sex impulses, whether those impulses are imminent or merely hypothetical. This threat causes repression, denial or reaction formation.
ellauri095.html on line 475: Tosta Savonarolasta oli vähän japitusta Pico della Mirandolan kohdalla, albumissa 54. Se vaikutti aika konnamaiselta, tai joltain terroristilta. Poltti kirjoja kuin Paludan ym. ruozalaiset, mistä ei pidä edes Hoblan matukolumnisti Peter Fakir sveduista. Sitä harmittaa ettei enää voi selata tylsissä bileissä isäntien kirjahyllyä ja salaa fnissata. Hyllyt ovat tyhjinä tai niissä on vain yxinäinen ananas tai banaani. Mamma anna ananasta, sanoi ruozalainen jo talvisodan aikana.
ellauri095.html on line 479: Mixei Hilja Haahti ollut näistä tietonen? Tai ehkä olikin, mutta nehän oli paavilaisia. Ja mixei se maalauttanut prerafaeliittojen jäljennöxiä? Oliko ne liian snobeja? Ainakaan ne ei ole suomalaisia, virsut puuttuvat. Tästä veli-Rossettin Beatricen kuvasta se olis silti voinut tykätä, siinä on berninimäistä orgastista fiilistä.
ellauri095.html on line 483: The sequence of events is clear. On 18 January 1866 Hopkins composed his most ascetic poem, “The Habit of Perfection” (Täydellinen asukokonaisuus). On 23 January he included poetry in the list of things to be given up for Lent. In July he decided to become a Catholic, and he traveled to Birmingham in September to consult the leader of the Oxford converts, John Henry Newman. Newman received him into the Church in October. On 5 May 1868 Hopkins firmly “resolved to be a religious.” Less than a week later, apparently still inspired by Savonarola, he made a bonfire of his poems and gave up poetry almost entirely for seven years. Finally, in the fall of 1868 Hopkins joined a “serged fellowship” like Savonarola’s and like the one he admired in “Eastern Communion”(1865), a commitment foreshadowed by the emphasis on vows of silence and poverty in “The Habit of Perfection.”
ellauri095.html on line 510: The result is an ode of thirty-five eight-line stanzas, divided into two parts. The first part, consisting of ten stanzas, is autobiographical, recalling how God touched the speaker in his own life. The second begins with seven stanzas dramatizing newspaper accounts of the wreck. Then fourteen stanzas narrow the focus to a single passenger, the tallest of the five nuns who drowned. She was heard to call on Christ before her death. The last four stanzas address God directly and culminate in a call for the conversion of England.
ellauri095.html on line 514: Nevertheless, although The Wreck of the Deutschland was a great breakthrough to the vision of God immanent in nature and thus to the sacramentalism that was to be the basis of the great nature poems of the following years, when Hopkins sent the poem to his friend Robert Bridges, Bridges refused to reread it despite Hopkins’s pleas. The poem was also rejected by the Jesuit magazine the Month, primarily because of its new “sprung” rhythm, and many subsequent readers have had difficulty with it as well.
ellauri095.html on line 558: Through the cobbled foam-fleece. merenvaahdon somistamana edestakaisin.
ellauri095.html on line 576: The earliest known shipwreck on the Kentish Knock was in the 17th century, but it is very probable that there were earlier wrecks for which the documentary evidence has not survived.
ellauri095.html on line 578: The loss of any emigrant ship had a strong international dimension and was accordingly extensively reported in English in both the ´Times´ of London and the ´New York Times´, for there was a sad irony in the deaths of passengers who had taken ship in search of a better life. Five Franciscan nuns from Salzkotten (now in Nordrhein-Westfalen, western Germany), named Barbara Hultenschmidt, Henrika Fassbender, Norbeta Reinkobe, Aurea Badziura and Brigitta Damhorst, died in the wreck. They were fleeing religious oppression at home as a result of anti-Catholic laws enacted as part of Otto von Bismarck´s ´Kulturkampf´ ("culture struggle") aimed at building centralised and unified German state resisting outside influences. One reader moved by the story in the London press was the Jesuit poet, Gerard Manley Hopkins, who wrote a moving and highly romanticised poem based on the incident, ´The Wreck of the Deutschland´. As Hopkins put it: ´Rhine refused them: Thames would ruin them´.
ellauri096.html on line 61: The Problem of Foreknowledge
ellauri096.html on line 65: Maybe all of your defecation is compulsory. If God exists, then He knows everything. So the threat to freedom becomes total for the theist. The problem of divine foreknowledge insinuates that theism precludes morality. (This takes some more arguing, namely that morality implies free will, proof omitted.)
ellauri096.html on line 67: In response to the apparent conflict between freedom and foreknowledge, medieval philosophers denied that future contingent propositions have a truth-value. That´s silly. They took themselves to be extending a solution Aristotle discusses in De Interpretatione to the problem of logical fatalism. According to this truth-value gap approach, ‘You will take a dump tomorrow’ is not true now. The prediction will become true tomorrow. A morally serious theist can agree with the Rubaiyat of Omar Khayyam:
ellauri096.html on line 81: 2 Kd(Td & KdTd v ~Td & Kd~Td) (test observable)
ellauri096.html on line 84: 5 d2: ~Td1 (test observable)
ellauri096.html on line 94: In later writings, Quine evinces general reservations about the concept of knowledge. One of his pet objections is that ‘know’ is vague. If knowledge entails absolute certainty, then too little will count as known. Quine infers that we must equate knowledge with firmly held true belief. Asking just how firm the belief must be is akin to asking just how big something has to be to count as being big. There is no answer to the question because ‘big’ lacks the sort of boundary enjoyed by precise words.
ellauri096.html on line 96: There is no place in science for bigness, because of this lack of boundary; but there is a place for the relation of biggerness. Here we see the familiar and widely applicable rectification of vagueness: disclaim the vague positive and cleave to the precise comparative. But it is inapplicable to the verb ‘know’, even grammatically. Verbs have no comparative and superlative inflections … . I think that for scientific or philosophical purposes the best we can do is give up the notion of knowledge as a bad job and make do rather with its separate ingredients. We can still speak of a belief as true, and of one belief as firmer or more certain, to the believer’s mind, than another (1987, 109).
ellauri096.html on line 106: Our suicide bomber may protest that the flies have been undercounted. Epistemic eliminativism dissolves all epistemic paradoxes. According to the eliminativist, epistemic paradoxes are symptoms of a problem with the very concept of knowledge.
ellauri096.html on line 120: Probabilistic skepticism dates back to Arcesilaus who took over the Academy two generations after Plato’s death. This moderate kind of skepticism, recounted by Cicero (Academica 2.74, 1.46) from his days as a student at the Academy, allows for justified belief. Many scientists are attracted to probabilism and dismiss the epistemologist’s preoccupation with knowledge as old-fashioned.
ellauri096.html on line 122: Despite the early start of the qualitative theory of probability, the quantitative theory did not develop until Blaise Pascal’s study of gambling in the seventeenth century (Hacking 1975). Only in the eighteenth century did it penetrate the insurance industry (even though insurers realized that a fortune could be made by accurately calculating risk). Only in the nineteenth century did probability make a mark in physics. And only in the twentieth century do probabilists make important advances over Arcesilaus.
ellauri096.html on line 124: Most of these philosophical advances are reactions to the use of probability by scientists. In the twentieth century, editors of science journals began to demand that the author’s hypothesis should be accepted only when it was sufficiently probable – as measured by statistical tests. The threshold for acceptance was acknowledged to be somewhat arbitrary. And it was also conceded that the acceptance rule might vary with one’s purposes. For instance, we demand a higher probability when the cost of accepting a false hypothesis is high.
ellauri096.html on line 127: and rationally believe q then you rationally believe both p and q. Little pictures of the same scene should sum to a bigger picture of the same scene. If rational belief can be based on an acceptance rule that only requires a high probability, there will be rational belief in a contradiction! You believe of each ticket it loses, and you believe that one of them wins.
ellauri096.html on line 199: Several commentators on the surprise test paradox object that interpreting surprise as unprovability changes the topic. Instead of posing the surprise test paradox, it poses a variation of the liar paradox. Other concepts can be blended with the liar. For instance, mixing in alethic notions generates the possible liar: Is ‘This statement is possibly false’ true? (Post 1970) (If it is false, then it is false that it is possibly false. What cannot possibly be false is necessarily true. But if it is necessarily true, then it cannot be possibly false.) Since the semantic concept of validity involves the notion of possibility, one can also derive validity liars such as Pseudo-Scotus’ paradox: ‘Squares are squares, therefore, this argument is invalid’ (Read 1979). Suppose Pseudo-Scotus’ argument is valid. Since the premise is necessarily true, the conclusion would be necessarily true. But the conclusion contradicts the supposition that argument is valid. Therefore, by reductio, the argument is necessarily invalid. Wait! The argument can be invalid only if it is possible for the premise to be true and the conclusion to be false. But we have already proved that the conclusion of ‘Squares are squares, therefore, this argument is invalid’ is necessarily true. There is no consistent judgment of the argument’s validity. A similar predicament follows from ‘The test is on Friday but this prediction cannot be soundly deduced from this announcement’.
ellauri096.html on line 233: Those who believe that the Church-Fitch result is a genuine paradox can respond to Williamson with paradoxes that accord with common sense (and science –and religious orthodoxy). For instance, common sense heartily agrees with the conclusion that something exists. But it is surprising that this can be proved without empirical premises. Since the quantifiers of standard logic (first order predicate logic with identity) have existential import, the logician can deduce that something exists from the principle that everything is identical to itself. Most philosophers balk at this simple proof because they feel that the existence of something cannot be proved by sheer logic. Likewise, many philosophers balk at the proof of unknowables because they feel that such a profound result cannot be obtained from such limited means.
ellauri096.html on line 234: 5.3 Moore’s problem
ellauri096.html on line 240: Moore’s problem is to explain what is odd about declarative utterances such as (M). This explanation needs to encompass both readings of (M): ‘p&B∼p
ellauri096.html on line 247: There is no problem with third person counterparts of (M). Anyone else can say about Moore, with no paradox, ‘G. E. Moore went to the pictures last Tuesday but he does not believe it’. (M) can also be embedded unparadoxically in conditionals: ‘If I went to the pictures last Tuesday but I do not believe it, then I am suffering from a worrisome lapse of memory ’. The past tense is fine: ‘I went to the picture shows last Tuesday but I did not believe it’. The future tense, ‘I went to the picture shows last Tuesday but I will not believe it’, is a bit more of a stretch (Bovens 1995). We tend to picture our future selves as better informed. Later selves are, as it were, experts to whom earlier selves should defer. When an earlier self foresees that his later self believes p
ellauri096.html on line 251: Robert Binkley (1968) anticipates van Fraassen by applying the reflection principle to the surprise test paradox. The student can foresee that he will not believe the announcement if no test is given by Thursday. The conjunction of the history of testless days and the announcement will imply the Moorean sentence:
ellauri096.html on line 261: The first objection is that it delivers the wrong result. The student is
ellauri096.html on line 319: Augustin soll als Sohn eines heruntergekommenen Wirts aufgewachsen sein und war demnach schon früh darauf angewiesen, mit seinem Dudelsack von einer Spelunke zur nächsten zu ziehen, wobei nur wenig von dem verdienten Geld die jeweilige Kneipe verlassen haben soll – der Überlieferung nach soll er auch ein „tüchtiger Trinker“ gewesen sein.
ellauri096.html on line 421: Henri Frédéric Schopin (12 June 1804 - 21 October 1880) was the winner of the Prix de Rome for painting in 1831.
ellauri096.html on line 436: Juotikas ei pidä parrakkaista setämiehistä, se haluis lyödä niitä lättyyn mutta käsi herpoaa kuin pahassa unessa. Aivan heteronormaalia pogonofobiaa.
ellauri096.html on line 438: Pogonophobia is the irrational, persistent and often unwarranted fear of beards. The word is derived from Greek pogon (beard) and phobos (fear). Mothers often warn their daughters to "never trust a man with beard or facial hair unless he is Santa Claus". In the United States, there has not been a president with a beard since the 1800s.
ellauri096.html on line 448: Mediafirma mahaantuo valkovenäläisiä ilotyttöjä. Niitä oli yhdessä takavuosien suomenruozalaisessa stadidekkarissa jonka kirjoitti joku kyldyropersonlighet otona. Kuka se nyt oli. Joku Hoblan toimittajako? Hemmetti kun muistaa melkein muttei ihan. Ei löytynyt edes plokista. Muistaiskohan K-täti? Jotenkin siihen liittyi satama ja ehkä ravintola Torni. Joo se muisti: Se oli Staffan Bruun, Club Domina Helsinki. Tulevaisuuteen sijoitettu romaani 1992 joka valitettavasti on jo menneisyyttä. Sama vaivaa George Orwellin romaania 1984, ja Clarken millenniaaleja avaruusseikkailuja riepupäiden juhlavuodelta 2001. Niin se aika rientää. Time flies like an arrow. Tempus fugit. Tempora mutantur, nos et mutamur in illis. Ja muita samansisältöisiä sananparsia. Aikakärpäset tekevät kaikesta kexeliäästä klisheetä. Tu kattoon kattoon kuinka tulevaisuus tapettiin tapettiin, sanoi aikakärpänen kaverille.
ellauri096.html on line 465: Jaskassa on muuten tätä samanlaista anaalis-obsessiivistä siisteydentarvetta kuin monissa samantyyppisissä pakko-oireisissa varsinkin jenkkikirjoittajissa, tulee mieleen heti Pynchon, Wallace ja Robert Heinlein. Niistä kaikista hirveintä ällöä on joku korvavaikku tai likaa käsissä. Sille jää möröt ja merikoirat kepeesti kakkosex. Kakkonen on niille kauhun lyömätön ykkönen. Mä lyön vetoa että Jaska popsii koko ajan paranoidisesti kaikenlaisia lääkkeitä, ravintolisiä sun muita ennaltaehkäiseviä tabuja ja hipsii kengänsyrjillä ettei vahingossakaan astu koirankakalle. Kun lamppu särkyy se pelkää kamalasti lasinsiruja. Niistä voi tulla isoja veripipejä. Se on varmaan nauttinut hurjasti korona-ajasta, kun saa vältellä muita elollisia ihan luvalla, pestä ketjuna käsiä ja pitää nolon naaman päällä naamaria. I can relate to that. Se ei tykkää edes siitä että hevosilla on nimiä. On kuin jääpuikko työnnettäisiin anuxeen. Porkkana tai lämmitetty nakki olisi ihan eri asia.
ellauri096.html on line 545: obile167671789/5052506817-ci102l-w1024/Artist-Kaethe-Kollwitzs-150th-Birthday.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri096.html on line 591: Although obscure at the time of its initial publication, Maldoror was rediscovered and championed by the Surrealist artists during the early twentieth century. The work's transgressive, violent, and absurd themes are shared in common with much of Surrealism's output; in particular, Louis Aragon, André Breton, Salvador Dalí, Man Ray, and Philippe Soupault were influenced by the work. Maldoror was itself influenced by earlier gothic literature of the period, including Lord Byron's Manfred, and Charles Maturin's Melmoth the Wanderer.
ellauri096.html on line 611: Oliko Loimaan Mikkoloilla joku koneliike pystymezässä? Jaskan porukoilla vaiko joillain rikkaammilla serkuilla? Jaskaa vaivaa okhlofobia jopa lumilinnassa.
ellauri096.html on line 637: Arvioinnit, eli tietynlaisten rationaalisten kehysten kautta muodostetut näkemykset toimenpiteiden vaikutuksista ovat hallintamentaliteetin näkökulmasta keskeisiä käytäntöjä. Tutkielman tutkimuskysymyksinä on 1) miten Kooma-malli voi olla mahdollinen ja 2) minkälaisia ristiriitoja tähän mahdollisuuteen liittyy. Kysymyksiin vastataan tarkastelemalla ensinnäkin hallintamentalisoitumisen historiaa, jonka kautta makrotaloustieteen muodostuminen on sijoitettu osaksi laajempaa länsimaista hallinnallistumisen tendenssiä. Tutkielmassa laaditaan kriittinen rekonstruktio makrotalousteorian ja siihen kytkeytyvien käytäntöjen syntyhistoriasta ja polveutumisesta sekä siinä ilmaantuneista erilaisista problematisoinneista. Tämän kautta Kooma-malli asetetaan laajempaan sitä mahdollistavaan historialliseen talousteoreettiseen ja teknologiseen kontekstiin. Tästä näkökulmasta tutkielmassa tarkastellaan miten Kooma-malli 'on tullut jostain' erilaisten makrotaloustieteellisten ilmaantumisten myötävaikutuksesta.
ellauri096.html on line 655: Ricardolainen evidenssi kuuluu lyhykäisyydessään. Kun valtio velkaantuu, kansalaiset odottavat verojen nousevan velkojen maksamisen vuoksi ja käyvät säästämään kohonneisiin veroihin. Suomen pankin ja Valtionvarain ministeriön malleissa tämä olettama on ja niillä malleilla annetaan politiikka suosituksia. Väittämä on tietenkin pötyä. Ensinnäkin valtiot eivät koskaan maksa velkojaan ja asukkaita ei kiinnosta valtion velka senkään vertaa kuin oma velka. Harva edes tietää mikä on valtion rahoitusasema vaikka siitä kerran kuussa uutisoitaisiin. Esimerkkisi 2017 Suomessa on uutisoitu useita kertoja julkisen sektorin rahoitusasemasta joka on maailman valtioista seitsemänneksi paras ja reilusti ylijäämäinen. Silti jopa johtavat poliitikot puhuvat kuinka joudutaan IMF holhoukseen ellei säästetä. Pääministerikään ei tiedä todellista asemaa. Jos ihmiset tietävät valtion aseman, he voivat olettaa, varsin perustellusti, velkaantumisen luovan talouskasvua joka on suurempi kuin velkaantuminen jolloin velkasuhde laskee. Jolloin valtion velkaantuminen saa ihmiset lisäämään omaa kulutustaan ja velkaantumistaan. Jos valtion velkaantuminen työllistää työttömän taikka antaa yritykselle ylimääräisen työtilaisuuden, lienee selvää, kyseinen talousobjekti lisää kulutustaan koska hänen henkilökohtainen asemansa paranee. Riippumatta valtion asemasta. Tästä on aika paljon kokeellista näyttöä. Ricardolainen evidenssi on väärä väite. Se on ihan perseestä. Omistavan luokan kieroilua. Tämän jutun kirjoittanut toimittaja edusti vasemmistoa, mutta ei lie ollut Marxin veizilaatikon pystyvin veizi.
ellauri096.html on line 666: Teoria on oikea mikäli oletamme kumpaankin maahan täysyöllisyyden ja kaupan häiriöttömyyden. Mustien joutsenten eli ennakoimattomien kriisien yhteydessä teoria on tappavan vaarallinen kuten monet sotia seuranneet nälänhädät kertovat. Samaten mikäli ei ole globaalia työvoimapulaa jossa heikkotuottoinen teollisuuskin pidetään mukana. Suhteellinen edun teoria on väärä. Aivan päin helvettiä izeasiassa.
ellauri096.html on line 670: In a 1976 paper, Robert Lucas argued that it is naive to try to predict the effects of a change in economic policy entirely on the basis of relationships observed in historical data, especially highly aggregated historical data. Lucas claimed that the decision rules of Keynesian models, such as the fiscal multiplier, cannot be considered as structural, in the sense that they cannot be invariant with respect to changes in government policy variables, stating:
ellauri096.html on line 674: This meant that, because the parameters of the models were not structural, i.e. not indifferent to policy, they would necessarily change whenever policy was changed. The so-called Lucas critique followed similar criticism undertaken earlier by Ragnar Frisch, in his critique of Jan Tinbergen's 1939 book Statistical Testing of Business-Cycle Theories, where Frisch accused Tinbergen of not having discovered autonomous relations, but "coflux" relations,[10] and by Jacob Marschak, in his 1953 contribution to the Cowles Commission Monograph, where he submitted that
ellauri096.html on line 682: The associated policy implications were clear: There is no need for any form of government intervention since, ostensibly, government policies aimed at stabilizing the business cycle are welfare-reducing. Since microfoundations are based on the preferences of decision-makers in the model, DSGE models feature a natural benchmark for evaluating the welfare effects of policy changes. The Kydland/Prescott 1982 paper is often considered the starting point of RBC theory and of DSGE modeling in general and its authors were awarded the 2004 Bank of Sweden Prize in Economic Sciences in Memory of Alfred Nobel.
ellauri096.html on line 701: Son livre Peau noire, masques blancs contient une critique de l´ouvrage Psychologie de la colonisation d´Octave Mannoni. Frantz Fanon adopte une attitude d´observateur extérieur au système colonial. Il n´admet pas l´analyse psychologique de Mannoni. En particulier l´élaboration du « complexe de Prospero » du colonisateur lui paraît « non fondée ». Les philosophes multiculturalistes (Charles Taylor, Will Kymlicka) ont plusieurs fois affirmé dans leurs articles s´inspirer des travaux de Fanon, précurseur du multiculturalisme.
ellauri096.html on line 715: Jaskan mielestä rasismi on synti jonka rangaistus on ripuli. Ruikelipaska on sen mielestä julma joskaan ei epätavallinen rangaistus. Ripulointi on sille varmaan tuttua, basillikauhuisena sillä on tod.näk. huono mahafloora, kun on aina pesemässä käsiä. Se luulee että rasistit vihatessaan muita rotuja itkee verta sekä kyyneleitä. Tokkopa, rasismi on kuin pieni vinous vain luonnollista. Koirat ei ole rasisteja mutta kyllä xenofoobeja. Xenofobia on rasismin tavallisin syy. Saahan ne olla erivärisiä kun ovat sitä jossain muualla. Eli se on joukkoistettua reviirinvartiointia.
ellauri096.html on line 773: The problem of weakness of will goes back at least as far as Plato. In Plato´s Protagoras Socrates asks precisely how it is possible that, if one judges action A to be the best course of action, one would do anything other than A?
ellauri096.html on line 806: In Piaget´s theory of cognitive development, the third stage is called the Concrete Operational Stage. During this stage, which occurs from age 7-12, the child shows increased use of logic or reasoning. One of the important processes that develops is that of Seriation, which refers to the ability to sort objects or situations according to any characteristic, such as size, color, shape, or type. For example, the child would be able to look at his plate of mixed vegetables and eat everything except the brussels sprouts.
ellauri096.html on line 810: "Whether we deal with historical or natural phenomena, the individual observation of phenomena assumes the character of a 'fact' only when it can be related to other, analogous observations in such a way that the whole series 'makes sense.' This 'sense' is, therefore, fully capable of being applied, as a control, to the interpretation of a new individual observation within the same range of phenomena. If, however, this new individual observation definitely refuses to be interpreted according to the 'sense' of the series, and if an error proves to be impossible, the 'sense' of the series will have to be reformulated to include the new individual observation (1955, p. 35)" (1990, pp. 230–231).
ellauri096.html on line 867: Moni historian maalimies harrasti nuorena mensuurimeikkailua. Heidän joukossaan oli muun muassa kommunismin isä Karl Marx. Yhteiskuntafilosofi Karl Marxilla (1818–1883) oli vasemman silmänsä yläpuolella mensuurimeikkailuottelussa Bonnin yliopistossa saatu arpi. Sekin oli muuten juutalaisia. Kainin merkkiä kantoivat Heikin kaa. Saksalainen säveltäjä Richard Wagner (1813–1883) saattoi sekin olla jutku tuntemattomaxi jääneen isän puolelta. Se oli innokas miekkailija opiskeluaikoinaan Leipzigissä, missä hän kuului yliopiston Saksikäsi-osakuntaan. Natsijohtaja Ernst Kaltenbrunner (1903–1946) tunnettiin julmuudestaan. Hänellä oli kasvoissaan useita mensuuriotteluista saatuja arpia ja useampia Victorinox-linkkuveizistä saatuja peräpuolella. Hullu filosofi Friedrich Nietzsche (1844–1900) opiskeli Bonnin yliopistossa teologiaa ja kuului Francofobia-osakuntaan. Hän keskeytti opintonsa vuoden jälkeen ja vaihtoi kielitieteeseen. Tanskalainen tähtitieteilijä Tyko Brahe (1546–1601) menetti nenänsä miekkataistelussa Rostockin yliopistossa. Syynä oli aivan mahdoton tunarointi. Silitysrautakansleri Otto von Bismarck (1815–1898) oli innokas miekkailija Göttingenin yliopistossa, missä sillä meni paremmin meikkailusalilla kuin luennoilla. Autotehtailija Ferdinand Porsche (1875–1951) opiskeli Wienissä ja miekkaili osakuntansa Bruna Bröder edustajana.
ellauri097.html on line 95: Mencken admired the German philosopher Friedrich Nietzsche (he was the first writer to provide a scholarly analysis in English of Nietzsche´s views and writings) and Joseph Conrad. His humor and satire owed much to Ambrose Bierce and Mark Twain. He did much to defend Dreiser despite freely admitting his faults, including stating forthrightly that Dreiser often wrote badly and was a gullible man. Mencken also expressed his appreciation for William Graham Sumner in a 1941 collection of Sumner´s essays and regretted never having known Sumner personally. In contrast, Mencken was scathing in his criticism of the German philosopher Hans Vaihinger, whom he described as "an extremely dull author" and whose famous book Philosophy of 'Als ob' he dismissed as an unimportant "foot-note to all existing systems."
ellauri097.html on line 101: Mencken was a keen cheerleader of scientific progress but was skeptical of economic theories and strongly opposed to osteopathic/chiropractic medicine. He also debunked the idea of objective news reporting since "truth is a commodity that the masses of undifferentiated men cannot be induced to buy" and added a humorous description of how "Homo Boobus," like "higher mammalia," is moved by "whatever gratifies his prevailing yearnings."
ellauri097.html on line 107: Like Nietzsche, he also lambasted religious belief and the very concept of Cod, as Mencken was an unflinching atheist, particularly Christian fundamentalism, Christian Science and creationism, and against the "Booboisie," his word for the ignorant middle classes. In the summer of 1925, he attended the famous Scopes "Monkey Trial" in Dayton, Tennessee, and wrote scathing columns for the Baltimore Sun (widely syndicated) and American Mercury mocking the anti-evolution Fundamentalists (especially William Jennings Bryan). The play Inherit the Wind is a fictionalized version of the trial, and as noted above the cynical reporter E.K. Hornbeck is based on Mencken. In 1926, he deliberately had himself arrested for selling an issue of The American Mercury, which was banned in Boston by the Comstock laws. Mencken heaped scorn not only on the public officials he disliked but also on the state of American elective politics itself.
ellauri097.html on line 113: In the summer of 1926, Mencken followed with great interest the Los Angeles grand jury inquiry into the famous Canadian-American evangelist Aimee Semple McPherson. She was accused of faking her reported kidnapping and the case attracted national attention. There was every expectation that Mencken would continue his previous pattern of anti-fundamentalist articles, this time with a searing critique of McPherson. Unexpectedly, he came to her defense by identifying various local religious and civic groups that were using the case as an opportunity to pursue their respective ideological agendas against the embattled Pentecostal minister. He spent several weeks in Hollywood, California, and wrote many scathing and satirical columns on the movie industry and Southern California culture. After all charges had been dropped against McPherson, Mencken revisited the case in 1930 with a sarcastic and observant article. He wrote that since many of that town´s residents had acquired their ideas "of the true, the good and the beautiful" from the movies and newspapers, "Los Angeles will remember the testimony against her long after it forgets the testimony that cleared her."
ellauri097.html on line 115: Mä lyön vaikka vetoa et tää oli sen fixun vaimon ansiota. Mencken oli vaikeasti luokiteltava sekobolzi. Sillä oli erivärisiä hattuja päässä pinossa kuin Koppiaismäellä. Herbert Spenceriäkin se kannusti, pitkä miinus siitä.
ellauri097.html on line 124: Pete oli hölmö humanisti vaikka muka teekkari. Tollanen behavioristityyppinen observationalisti.
ellauri097.html on line 128: Elsewhere, he dismissed higher mathematics and probability theory as "nonsense", after he read Angoff´s article for Charles S. Peirce in the American Mercury. "So you believe in that garbage, too—theories of knowledge, infinity, laws of probability. I can make no sense of it, and I don´t believe you can either, and I don´t think your god Peirce knew what he was talking about."
ellauri097.html on line 130: Uuskantilainen Vaihinger began to develop a system of philosophy he called the "philosophy of 'als ob' ". In it he offered a system of thought in which God and reality might best be represented as paradigms. This was not to say that either God or reality was any less certain than anything else in the realm of man’s awareness, but only that all matters confronting man might best be regarded in hypothetical ways.
ellauri097.html on line 139: The Jews could be put down very plausibly as the most unpleasant race ever heard of. As commonly encountered, they lack many of the qualities that mark the civilized man: courage, dignity, incorruptibility, ease, confidence. They have vanity without pride, voluptuousness without taste, and learning without wisdom. Their fortitude, such as it is, is wasted upon puerile objects, and their charity is mainly a form of display.
ellauri097.html on line 155: If chemists were similarly given to fanciful and mystical guessing, they would have hatched a quantum theory forty years ago to account for the variations that they observed in atomic weights. But they kept on plugging away in their laboratories without calling in either mathematicians or theologians to aid them, and eventually they discovered the isotopes, and what had been chaos was reduced to the most exact sort of order.
ellauri097.html on line 161: [Physicists] have, in late years, made a great deal of progress, though it has been accompanied by a considerable quackery. Some of the notions which they now try to foist upon the world, especially in the astronomical realm and about the atom, are obviously nonsensical, and will soon go the way of all unsupported speculations. But there is nothing intrinsically insoluble about the problems they mainly struggle with, and soon or late really competent physicists will arise to solve them. These really competent physicists, I predict, will be too busy in their laboratories to give any time to either metaphysics or theology. Both are eternal enemies of every variety of sound thinking, and no man can traffic with them without losing something of his good judgment.
ellauri097.html on line 235: 2 Jönsin esittelemää nobelluokan hinaajaa
ellauri097.html on line 258: Julien Green est né à Paris, 4, rue Ruhmkorff, de parents américains, descendant du côté de sa mère du sénateur et représentant démocrate de la Géorgie au congrès américain Julian Hartridge (en) (1829-1879) et dont Julien Green porte le prénom (Green a été baptisé « Julian » ; l'orthographe a été changée en « Julien » par son éditeur français dans les années 1920). Il grandit dans le 16e arrondissement de Paris, puis au Vésinet et passe ses vacances dans la commune d'Andrésy, dans les Yvelines. Il poursuit toutes ses études en France au lycée Janson-de-Sailly. Sa mère, protestante pieuse et aimante, meurt alors qu'il a 14 ans, et la famille déménage rue Cortambert, à Paris. Il se convertit au catholicisme en 1916, à la suite de son père et de toutes ses sœurs, ainsi qu'il le raconte dans Ce qu'il faut d'amour à l'homme, son autobiographie spirituelle. Il abjure l'anglicanisme à la crypte de la chapelle des sœurs de la rue Cortambert. Âgé de seulement 17 ans, Julian Green réussit à rejoindre les rangs de la Croix-Rouge américaine, puis est détaché dans l’artillerie française en 1918 en tant que sous-lieutenant et sert en Italie. Démobilisé en mars 1919, il se rend pour la première fois aux États-Unis en septembre de la même année et effectue trois ans d'études à l’université de Virginie, où il éprouve un premier amour chaste et secret pour un camarade d'études. Il écrit son premier livre en anglais, avant de revenir vivre en France.
ellauri097.html on line 260: À Paris, il rencontre Robert de Saint Jean en 1924. Ils resteront liés durant soixante ans. La publication du Journal intégral, à partir de 2019, a révélé que cet amour, longtemps présenté comme platonique, revêtait aussi une dimension sexuelle.
ellauri097.html on line 262: En juillet 1940, après la défaite de la France, il retourne en Amérique. En 1942, il est mobilisé et envoyé à New York pour servir au Bureau américain de l'information de guerre. De là, cinq fois par semaine, il s'adresse à la France dans l'émission de radio Voice of America, travaillant entre autres avec André Breton. Il enseigne la littérature dans une faculté de jeunes filles américaines. Julien Green revient en France juste après la Seconde Guerre mondiale et retourne à la foi de sa jeunesse.
ellauri097.html on line 271: La plupart des livres de ce catholique pratiquant s'intéressent aux problèmes de la foi et de la religion ainsi qu'à l'hypocrisie qui leur est liée.
ellauri097.html on line 292: Patrick White (1912–1990) was raised in Sydney’s well-to-do Rushcutter’s Bay, and was sent to England at 13. He attended boarding school, then Cambridge, and during the war was stationed in North Africa. It was there, in 1941, that White met Manoly Lascaris, the Greek officer who he would love for the rest of his life. By the time White and Lascaris returned to Australia. in 1947 White had written three tepidly received novels, and a play. It took coming home to Sydney to transform his writing and elevate it to the level of genius. White produced The Tree of Man, in 1955, his first novel to be written in Sydney. He went on to write a string of masterpieces in quick succession: Voss, Riders in the Chariot, The Vivisector. He received the Nobel Prize for Literature in 1973. The Nobel committee credited White “for an epic and psychological narrative art which has introduced a new continent into literature.”
ellauri097.html on line 298: In 2006, the Weekend Australian newspaper conducted an experiment. They submitted chapter three of The Eye of the Storm (1973) to twelve publishers and agents around Australia under an anagram of White’s name, Wraith Picket. Nobody offered to publish the book. One responded, “the sample chapter, while reply (sic) with energy and feeling, does not give evidence that the work is yet of a publishable quality.” Notwithstanding that the chapter was not White’s finest writing, and the unfairness of submitting a chapter out of narrative sequence, the hoax prompted a minor crisis in Australian literature: if the industry couldn’t recognize the greatness of our sole Nobel winner, how unenlightened must the country’s publishing industry be now? Shortly thereafter, the ABC launched an online portal called Why Bother With Patrick White? The portal always struck me as sad. What other major writer would need a website dedicated to convincing his countrymen to give him another go? The link to the website is dead now. It would seem, in the end, that nobody could be bothered with Patrick White.
ellauri097.html on line 341: Disjunctiv Mies jolla on helliä tunteita miehiin vaikka bylsii naisia ("Homoromantic heterosexual") Sale Bellow, Joseph Conrad, T.S. Eliot, Bernard Shaw, Robert Frost, Thomas Mann
ellauri097.html on line 399: Nennenswert ist auch ein Brief von Maria Charlotte Jacobi an Kant vom Sommer 1762. In neckischem Ton schreibt sie, sie und ihre Freundin hätten den Magister nicht - wie erwartet - im Garten gefunden. Sie beschäftige sich jetzt gerade mit dem Verfertigen eines Degenbandes für ihn und erwarte ihn für "morgen Nachmittag". Der Brief endet mit dem Satz: "Meine Freundin und ich überschicken Ihnen einen Kuss ..."
ellauri097.html on line 408: Während Kant mit Green erst ab seinem fünften Lebensjahrzehnt eng befreundet war - seit er mit der Konzeption seiner ersten "Kritik" begann -, gab es vorher andere enge Freunde. Einer war Christian Jacob Kraus. 29 Jahre jünger als Kant, wurde er 1780 sein Kollege. Auch er war und blieb Junggeselle. Als Kant 1787 ein eigenes Haus kaufte und regelmäßig Honoratioren zu seinem Mittagstisch einlud, war Kraus dabei - und zwar nicht nur als einer der Gäste, sondern als Gesellschafter, das heißt, als Gastgeber, der sich auch die Kosten der Mahlzeit mit Kant teilte. Außerdem blieb Kraus nach dem Mittagessen oft bis sieben oder acht Uhr abends bei Kant - länger als alle anderen Tischgäste. Für die Königsberger Straßenpassanten bildeten die beiden schon bald ein originelles "Pärchen", zumal sie sich äußerlich sehr ähnelten - beide waren sehr klein. Die Nähe zwischen beiden muss groß gewesen sein, denn Kant schenkte Kraus 1787 einen Brillantring.
ellauri097.html on line 436: The famous Allan Ramsay portrait of David Hume, hanging in the University of Edinburgh, depicts him wearing a remarkable hat: a unique salmon-coloured turban. I was able to see the original on the occasion of receiving an honorary degree from Edinburgh in 2007, and ever since then I have desired to obtain a replica of that curious hat for myself (to wear on special occasions, such as those requiring academic regalia).
ellauri097.html on line 455: People sometimes argue in favor of homosexuality by arguing that their inclination is natural, and if it’s natural, then we shouldn’t be making any moral objections about it. If that is their argument they are guilty of is-ought.
ellauri097.html on line 477: The appearance of design suggests genuine design. The appearance of teleology suggests genuine teleology, and so examples of teleology in the natural realm point to the existence of God. That’s what a teleological argument for God’s existence amounts to - the argument from design. So the teleology, to me, is evidence for God, and that entails certain moral obligations to the God that created with purpose.
ellauri097.html on line 530: Mixvitussa Giannín on ihan pakko bylsiä jeesustelevaa Robertoa?
ellauri097.html on line 531: Roberto haluu paasata katumuxesta, se on kuin pistelisi neulalla. Samaan aikaan se haluis pistellä 16v täyttänyttä Giannía kuin Singer ompelukoneella. Siitähän elämässä lopultakin on kymysys.
ellauri097.html on line 533: No kirjan loppu oli lopultakin onnellinen. Gianní ei antanut typerälle Robertolle vaikka ensin meinasi, vaan pani töröhampaan Rosarion hoitelemaan hiidenkivien toimitusmiehenä immenkalvon puhkaisun. Ja lähti sen päälle lesbon pikkusisko Idan kaa kaxistaan Veneziaan. Lujana päätöxenä tulla aikuisemmaxi kuin kukaan tädeistä.
ellauri097.html on line 568: Siksikin kirjan määritelmään kuuluu – täytyy kuulua! – kirkas ja vakaa tulevaisuuden näköala. Kun kirja tehdään ja julkaistaan, se valmistautuu pitkään elämään, paljoon odotukseen. Se vyöttää kupeensa, tai toiset sen vyöttävät, jos se sattuu olemaan nobellaatua, ja vievät sen minne se ei tahdo mennä. Kirja ei ole lähetys eikä esitys, joka on erikoistunut hetken palvelemiseen. Kirja on mustaa valkoisella, painettu ja siksi painava. Se pysyy ja jää. Kuin siirtolohkare, se ei enää siirry. Se ei ole menossa minnekään. Se on valmis, valmis kaikkeen. Se ei mene pois. Ei tosiaankaan, divarit ei ota niitä vastaan enää ilmaisexikaan. Askartelutarpeixi ne menevät, tai jätepaperix.
ellauri097.html on line 576: Ei ole enää hitaaseen, vilpittömään (miten niin vilpittömään? Miten niin äänikirjojen kuunteleminen tai pöntön tuijotus on vilpillisempää?) lukemiseen perustuvaa kulttuuria, joka aidosti tukisi teollisesti tuotettua kirjaobjektia ja antaisi sille arvon ja aseman, ottaisi sen vastaan ja vakavasti.
ellauri097.html on line 596: Tavoitelkaamme siis pientä yleisöä! Niitä kahtakymmentä, kahtasataa ihmistä, joita kirja vielä kiinnostaa. Siis mun (Nyölénin) suomentama, globaaleista bestsellereistä on paras vaieta kuin Wittgenstein.
ellauri097.html on line 689: Calvin: [writing] Yakka foob mog. Grug pubbawup zink wattoom gazork. Chumble spuzz. [aside] I love loopholes.
ellauri097.html on line 696: ‘The Tuft of Flowers’ by Robert Frost is a poem about the lives of simple, hardworking people. As it progresses, it takes a more mystical turn.
ellauri097.html on line 709: By Robert Frost
ellauri097.html on line 802: Robert Frost, often regarded as a folksy farmer-poet, was also a more profound, even terrifying, creator. His poem "The Road Not Taken" reveals his delight in multiple meanings, his ambivalence, and his penchant for misleading his readers. He denied that the poem proclaimed his striving for the unconventional and asserted that it was meant to tease his friend Edward Thomas for his compulsive indecisiveness. This essay also notes the unconscious meanings of the poem, including Frost's reactions to losing his close friend, his own indecisiveness, his conflict between heterosexual and homosexual object choices, his need for a "secret sharer," and his attachments. J Glenn. Psychoanal Study Child. 2001.
ellauri097.html on line 808: Frost pyh-pyhitteli naisrunoilijoille ja peukutti jotain Wordsworthia. (No ei Viljo kyllä kovin miehekkäältä vaikuta.) Mitä homommax se tuli sitä maskuliinisemmin se koitti esiintyä. Kai se oli tollanen Mannling sitte, Tom of Finland tyyppiä. Välillä homofoobinen, välillä homofiilinen, aina homososiaalinen. Väänsi läppää siitä ja meni piiloon läpän taaxe. Mut paras kazoa ize noita runoja eikä luottaa sokeasti Kareniin, Karen vaikuttaa aika rekkafeministiltä.
ellauri097.html on line 816: Robert Frost's personal life was plagued by grief and loss. In 1885 when he was 11, his father died of tuberculosis, leaving the family with just eight dollars. Frost's mother died of cancer in 1900. In 1920, he had to commit his younger sister Jeanie to a mental hospital, where she died nine years later. Mental illness apparently ran in Frost's family, as both he and his mother suffered from depression, and his daughter Irma was committed to a mental hospital in 1947. Frost's wife, Elinor, also experienced bouts of depression.
ellauri097.html on line 818: Elinor and Robert Frost had six children: son Elliot (1896–1900, died of cholera); daughter Lesley Frost Ballantine (1899–1983); son Carol (1902–1940, committed suicide); daughter Irma (1903–1967); daughter Marjorie (1905–1934, died as a result of puerperal fever after childbirth); and daughter Elinor Bettina (died just one day after her birth in 1907). Only Lesley and Irma outlived their father. Frost's wife, who had heart problems throughout her life, developed breast cancer in 1937, and died of heart failure in 1938.
ellauri097.html on line 821: obert-frost.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri097.html on line 822: obert_Frost_NYWTS_5.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri098.html on line 39: Mix just noi 101 Suomi 100-kirjaa, tai nää 1001 bestselleriä kaikista 130 miljoonasta? Vainko että saadaan edistettyä globalisaatiota, vähennettyä entisestään biodiversiteettiä, saadaan kaikki termiittiapinat suuntaamaan antenninsa samaan suuntaan kohti kapitalismin hyväntuoxuisia feromonilähteitä, painosten kuningattaria?
ellauri098.html on line 56: The greatest challenges a detective faces aren't always a devious criminal or a really tough case — all those are a cakewalk compared to managing their personal life. The genius ones are nerds with trouble getting along with people or worse, have social or personality disorders. The hard-working ones are workaholics who let their family relationships slide because they're never home. The overworked and nervous ones dabble in drugs and court substance addictions (or blood). The Film Noir detective and his descendants have terrible luck with women, who either end up dead, broken or distant; if he has a wife he may be cheating on her. And gods help him and his friends if some of the bad guys or associates that they helped put in the clink come back to haunt him. And his personal finances are probably gone thanks to being The Gambling Addict. In short, it's rare to have a detective as a main character in a dramatic story and have them not have at least one serious character flaw that's tangential to them actually working cases.
ellauri098.html on line 62: This trope often goes hand in hand with There Are No Therapists, Trauma Conga Line and dramatic Crapsack Worlds. Big, Screwed-Up Family can be a justification for this trope. When all or nearly all involved parties are insane, you have a Cast Full of Crazy. Royal families are particularly prone to this, as are cops and detectives. The Dysfunction Junction is the natural habitat of the Jerkass Woobie.
ellauri098.html on line 109: Gradientti (nolla nousukas(snobi) laskukas(dandy) kupera kovera siksakkia)
ellauri098.html on line 222: 16. KAMPPAILU: Hero and pahis tapaavat ja ottaa erää suoraan, joko flaidaavat tai muuten kisailevat. Voisko tää olla niinko Jaakob joka paini pystypainia herra isoherran kanssa ja satutti sitä "joteskin" nivusiin?
ellauri098.html on line 349: Universaaleja trooppeja olisivat seuraavat 106: Se olen minä, Olkoon menneexi, Tavis siis pahis, Moukan tuuri, Fanit muistaa tissit, Valkotaulu, Hobonyytti, Isompi parempi, Nuija ja tosinuija, Bonusmazku, Vanhassa vara parempi, Flashback, Tshehovin pyssy, Herot jumissa, Peitto paremmin, Doppelgänger jää kiinni, Hullu idea toimii, Lokalisoimaton vinkkaus, Hidastettu räjähdys, Lähettämätön kirje, Voitto diskauxella, Joku muu saa kiitoxet, Keijut vastaan knääpiöt, Tunteet pintaan, Hyvää pahixessa, Aikuisviihde, Kissa kadoxissa, Tiimin puhetorvi, Pää kädessä, Fiktiivinen vastine, Käsi kamerassa, Akun omatunto, Genrensynnyttäjä, Epäuskottava skene, Genresekoitus, Genrentappaja, Julkkis Japanissa, Elämän päämäärä, Trendikuvaaja, Tiimihali, Rahapuu, Vaarallinen koskea, Oza pöytään, Hero, Eka erä konnalle, Yxi kylä vastustaa, Toivo elää, Ilmainen lounas herolle, Okei olen tekopyhä, Tekopyhä, Lukukelvoton texti, Improvisoitu astalo, Huppupää, Kakun sisästä, Oikeesti kiinnostaa vaan Godzilla, Kuzupilli, Tiiminvetäjä, Diagnoosi pahentaa tautia, Valheenpaljastin, Porsaanreikä, Pitkä tukka on tyttöjen, Emokarhu, Missio venyy, Salaperäinen viesti, Profeetta omalla maalla, Koskaan ei käydä paskalla, Ei suuntavaistoa, Ulos kuvaajasta, Ainoa Toivo, Julle Ankanpää, Sepe Susi, Läpeensä terve, Tinapaperijuoni, Ystävät voimaannuttavat, Epifania, Koirantaputtaja voittaa, Tomppelisyötti, Salainen moraalitesti, Potti nokkiin, Sairasta ja väärin, Narunpätkästä voi olla hyötyä, Keihäänkantaja, Alan uuden elämän, Skene välähdyxinä, Horror silminnäkijän silmistä, Mehukas särkymisen ääni, Oma koti kullan kallis, Saalissäkki, Aika aikaa kutakin, Ariadnen lanka, Suunsoitto ennen mazia, Trilogia, Trooppivihje, Kotonakin on konnia, Puhelinetiketti teeveessä, Yhteensopivat keskustelunkatkelmat, Pidetty konna, Epäluotettava lähde, Epäluotettava kertoja, Nupit yhteentoista, Esitrooppi, Triste post coitum, Sää ei sovi tarkoituxeen, Pyrrhoxen voitto, Sik kun piti olla sak, Kotiinpääsy on estynyt.
ellauri098.html on line 351: Tshehovin pyssy on dead giveaway vihje tulevista käänteistä, niinkuin varmaan Ferrantella papin mustelmaiset kädet siitä että papilla on AIDS, siis varmaan Robertollakin, ne onkin homopari, eli Gianní jää taas soittelemaan lehdellä. Bugger!
ellauri098.html on line 436: Aika monet kirjailijat ja fiktiiviset hahmot löytyy esiluokiteltuna, mikä helpottaa bibliografista kirjallisuustutkimusta ja tekee siitä entistä objektiivisempaa. Nyt siis kehiin tyyppejä! Anna mennä Jung!
ellauri098.html on line 448: It can be an effort for INTPs to remain grounded and relate their thinking to the real world, and others can see them as distant and unemotional. But the pure rationality that an INTP brings is a powerful tool for unlocking problems when it’s applied properly.
ellauri098.html on line 450: pöllö, mäyrä, kilpikonna, kobra vanha valkoinen
ellauri098.html on line 451: Tuomas Akvinolainen, Sergey Brin, Charles Darwin (taas), Death (Pratchett), Rene Descartes, Richard Dawkins, Albert Einstein, Gerald Ford, Milton Friedman, Gandalf (taas), Hermione Granger, Bob Heinlein, Dustin Hoffman, William James, I. Kant, Franz Kafka, Harper Lee, Abraham Lincoln, John Locke, Larry Page, Gregory Peck, Adam Smith, Thucydides, Yoda
ellauri098.html on line 459: Adele, Aristoteles, Kemal Atatürk, Wernher von Braun, Napoleon Bonaparte, Warren Buffett, Julius Caesar, Jim Carrey, Sean Connery (taas), Simon Cowell, Elisabet I, Falstaff (Shakespeare), Bill Gates, Al Gore, Hermann Göring, Katherine Hepburn, Hannibal, Steve Jobs, Garri Kasparov, Tywin Lannister, Lex Luther (Superman), Angela Merkel, Tricky Dick Nixon, Leia Organa, Nancy Pelosi, Frank D Roosevelt, Carl Sagan, Arnold Schwarzenegger, Peter Sellers, Quentin Tarantino, Margaret Thatcher, Donald Trump, Voldemort, Sigourney Weaver (Alien)
ellauri098.html on line 467: John Adams, Isaac Asimov, keisari Augustus, Jane Austen, Dan Aykroyd, L.van Beethoven, Anders Breivik, Emily Bronté, Cassius (Shakespeare) Hillary Clinton, Elvis Costello, Charles Darwin, Mr. Darcy, Ike Eisenhower, Colin Firth, Bobby Fischer, von Frankenstein, Gandalf, Richard Gere, Al Gore (taas), Hannibal (taas), Steven Hawking, G.W.F.Hegel, Herakleitos, Sherlock Holmes, Horatio Hornblower, Thomas Jefferson, Ted Kaczynski (Unabomber), John F.Kennedy, J.M. Keynes, Stanley Kubrik, Meyer Lansky, Ivan Lendl, V.I.Lenin, C.S. Lewis, Martin Luther, Elon Musk, Michelle Obama, John Nash, Martina Navratilova, Isaac Newton, Friedrich Nietsche, Sylvia Plath, Ayn Rand, Rosenkrantz&Guildenstern (Hamlet), Jean-Paul Sartre, Arnold Schwarzenegger (taas), Nikola Tesla, Sun Tzu, Bruce Wayne (Batman), Norbert Wiener, Woodrow Wilson, Mark Zuckerberg
ellauri098.html on line 475: Ariel (Pieni merenneito), Mahmoud Ahmadinejad (Iran), Julian Assange, Calvin (Lassi), Fidel Castro, Cher, Samuel Clemens (M2), Bill Cosby, Salvador Dali, Jacques Derrida, Charles Dickens, Walt Disney, Eliza Dolittle, Bob Dylan, Umberto Eco, Faramir, Anne Frank, Muammar Gaddafi, Theodor Geisel (Dr.Seuss), Genie (Aladdin), F.J. Haydn, Aldous Huxley, Janis Joplin, Buster Keaton, Naomi Klein, Anais Nin, Ozzy Osbourne, Osho Rajneesh, Sinbad merenkulkija, Bruce Springsteen, Justin Timberlake, Hunter S. Thompson, Orson Welles, Oscar Wilde, Kurt Wonnegut, Alan Watts (guru), Ron Weasley, Willy Wonka
ellauri098.html on line 483: H.C. Andersen, Frodo Baggins, William Blake, Marlon Brando, Charley Brown, Albert Camus, Johnny Depp, Jane Eyre, Mia Farrow, V.van Gogh, Homeros, P.Johannes, Franz Kafka (taas), Helen Keller, Kermit the Frog, Sören Kierkegaard, Hugh Laurie, John Lennon, Luna Lovegood, P.Luukas, C.S. Lewis (taas), Neizyt Maria, Bob Marley, A.A. Milne, John Milton, Jim Morrison, Edgar Allan Poe, Fred Rogers, Romeo&Juliet, J-J.Rousseau, Antoine de Saint-Exupery, Carlos Santana, William Shakespeare, Bella Swan (Twilight), Luke Skywalker, Amy Tan, Daenerys Targaryen, JRR Tolkien, Vergilius, Andy Warhol, Bill Waterson (Calvin&Hobbes), Virginia Woolf
ellauri098.html on line 489: ENFJs, like other “E” types, are extremely sociable. They’re fascinated with other people’s lives and care deeply about those around them. They have a positive, idealistic outlook and love to help others improve themselves and solve their problems. They tend to be decisive and good planners, so they make excellent leaders, counselors, and facilitators.
ellauri098.html on line 500: Propellipäisiä kexijäpellejä lobbareita, fanaatikkoja ja hulluja tyranneja
ellauri098.html on line 502: Aristophanes, Simone de Beauvoir, Osama Bin Laden, Niels Bohr, Geoffrey Chaucer, Noam Chomsky, Alice Cooper, Leonard Cohen, Dante Alighieri, Fedor Dostojevski, Mahatma Gandhi, George Harrison, Nathaniel Hawthorne, Adolf Hitler, Carl Jung, M.L. King (taas), Marilyn Manson, Robert Mugabe, Plato, J.K. Rowling, Arthur Schopenhauer, Alexandr Solchenitsyn, Baruch Spinoza, Shirley Temple, Leo Tolstoi, Leon Trotsky, Garry Trudeau (Doonesbury), Ludi Wittgenstein, Mary Wollstonecraft, Imi Lo
ellauri098.html on line 511: Steve Ballmer (Mikkisoft), Bette Davis, Boromir, Celine Dion (taas), Jerry Falwell, Billy Graham, Andrew Jackson, Lyndon B.Johnson, Saddam Hussein, Cersel Lannister, Theresa May, Dr.Phil McGraw, Eliot Ness, Michelle Obama (taas), P.Paavali, Augusto Pinochet, Robb Stark, Margaret Thatcher (taas), Georg von Trapp, Ivanka Trump, Darth Vader
ellauri098.html on line 521: Roope Ankka, Benedict XVI (nazipaavi), Stannis Baratheon, Jeff Bezos, George Bush sr, Karl Dönitz, Kirk Douglas, kuningatar Elisabet II, Henry Ford, Sigmund Freud, Stonewall Jackson, Fredrik Suuri, Martin Heidegger, Thomas Hobbes, Ingvar Kamprad, Alexej Karenin, Julia Roberts, Mitt Romney, Gary Sinise, Severus Snape, Sting, P.Tuomas, Harry Truman, George Washington, Welligtonin herttua, Xenophon
ellauri098.html on line 536: LM Alcott, Alice (Carroll), Captain America, Marcus Aurelius, Belle (Beauty of Beast), Beyonce, Barbara Bush, Jimmy Carter, prinssi Charles, Agatha Christie, Cinderella, Aretha Franklin, Francesco Franco, Forrest Gump, Heinrich Himmler, Kim Kardashian, Robert E.Lee, George Marshall, kuningatar Mary I, Ophelia (Hamlet), Mike Pence, Barbra Streisand, W.H.Taft, Alfred Lord Tennyson, St.Teresa of Avila, Äiti Teresa, Dr.Watson (Holmes), Bruce Willis, Tiger Woods
ellauri098.html on line 548: ISTP Cool self-contained problem-solvers.
ellauri098.html on line 552: Woody Allen, Aragorn, The Beast (Beauty and), Humphrey Bogart, James Bond, Charles Bronson, Simon Cowell (taas), Tom Cruise, James Dean, Diogenes, Clint Eastwood, Henry Ford, Ernest Hemingway, Edmund Hillary, Indiana Jones, Steve Jobs, Frida Kahlo, Bruce Lee, Mad Max, John McEnroe, Vladimir Putin, Keith Richards, Ernst Rommel, Alan Shepard (astronaut), Frank Sinatra, Julia Timoshenko, Melanie Trump, Frank Zappa (taas), Venus Williams
ellauri098.html on line 560: Idi Amin, princess Anna (Frozen), Lydia Bennet (Austen), Beyonce (taas), Justin Bieber, Ray Charles, Bill Clinton, Paulo Coelho, Miley Cyrus, Cameron Diaz, Leonardo DiCaprio, Judy Garland, Mel Gibson, Theon Greyjoy, Goldie Hawn, Hugh Heffner, Bob Hope, Lindsay Lohan, P.Markus, Paul McCartney, Michelangelo, Benito Mussolini, Lord Nelson, Jamie Oliver, Dolly Parton, Pietari Suuri, Pippin Took (Tolkien), Elvis Presley, Ronald Reagan, Little Richard, Tony Robbins (motivational speaker), Simba (leijonakuningas), Homer Simpson, Steven Spielberg, Ringo Starr, Serena Williams,
ellauri098.html on line 568: Christina Aguilera, Pamela Anderson, Marie Antoinette, Fred Astaire, David Beckham, Yogi Berra, Bjork, David Bowie, prinsessa Diana, Bob Dylan (taas), Lady Gaga, Paris Hilton, Michael Jackson, Mick Jagger, Erwin "Magic" Johnson, Jimi Hendrix, Audrey Hepburn, Paul McCartney (taas), Marilyn Monroe, Jim Morrison (taas), W.A. Mozart, keisari Nero, Brad Pitt, Prince, Leni Riefenstahl, Rihanna, Keith Richards (taas), Auguste Rodin, Britney Spears, Elizabeth Taylor, Justin Timberlake (taas), Thich Nhat Hanh (vietn. pasifisti), John Travolta, Pharrell Williams
ellauri098.html on line 737: The Manual has lots of very useful material, but it costs close to $100 (gasp!). Here are the latest figures based on a random sample using the Form M. 16,000 people were contacted. The forms of 3,009 people u with "best fit" as determined by the client, the results of this survey were not shown to the individuals to see if they indeed did fit. Nevertheless, the survey does give us a good cross section of results to work from. The sample is corrected for the demographics of the USA. (Did some Es not hand in their form because they were talking too much. Did some of the Is get so caught up in their inner world? Did the Ss get so obsessed with details they didn´t hand it in? Did the Ns get so caught up in the big picture? Did the Ts figure it was too airy-fairy people stuff? Did the Fs focus so much on how they felt that they didn't get theirs off? Maybe the Js didn't like the way it was organized? The Ps just may not have found the right moment to get down to doing the inventory.)
ellauri099.html on line 44: The remains of Oscar Wilde lie in Père Lachaise Cemetery in Paris. His sleek, modern tomb, designed by the British sculptor Jacob Epstein and commissioned by Wilde’s lover and executor, John Robert "Haj" Ross, is one of the most frequently visited and recognizable graves in a cemetery notable for the many famous writers, artists, and musicians buried there (Balzac, Chopin, Proust, Gertrude Stein, Jim Morrison). The surface of Epstein’s massive monolith is covered with hundreds of lipstick kisses, some ancient and faded, others new and vibrant. (“The madness of kissing” is what Wilde said Lord Alfred Douglas’s “red-roseleaf lips” were made for.)...
ellauri099.html on line 92: Musset hiiri veri Astheniker obalassets%2Fsuomi-fi-fi%2Fmedia%2Fimages%2Fnew-hero--1440x580%2Fapodemus-flavicollis.jpg&f=1&nofb=1" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 150: J-J Rousseau kukko sappi Athletiker INFP - Parantainen obbyfarms.com/wp-content/uploads/2017/09/20172309/rooster-myths-524065222.jpg" height="100px" />
ellauri099.html on line 170: Although the splendidly unreliable Diogenes Laertius says that Plato possessed no property other than what is mentioned in his will, he received a large sum of money from Dionysius I. Plato had a significant fund of money at his disposal (the exorbitant figure of 80 talents is mentioned). Indeed, Plato is also said to have had a banker called Andromedes. In other words, Plato was rich and had wealthy patrons and very probably wealthy students.
ellauri099.html on line 181: Plato worked at the Academy until his death in 347 B.C.E., interrupted only by two more extended trips to Sicily. The Academy survived for a few more centuries until it was destroyed by the Roman general Sulla in 87 B.C.E. during the sack of Athens. The buildings were probably burned along with many other sanctuaries, and the trees from the grove of academe were felled to provide timber for his siege machines. So it goes, I thought.
ellauri099.html on line 192: We do know that after having served as Lector in the Academy and being described as its “Mind” by Plato, Aristotle was not chosen as the latter’s successor. The job of scholarch, or head of the school, by sheer happenstance, went to Speusippus, Plato’s nephew. Aristotle left Athens shortly after Plato’s death and stayed away for around 12 years. Was he angry or disappointed not to have been chosen as head of the Academy? By being ordered round by big butthead´s nephew, who was an even bigger butthead?
ellauri099.html on line 199: Famously, Aristotle was asked by Philip II of Macedon to be the tutor of his 13-year-old son, Alexander. Aristotle set up school in the Macedonian fortress of Mieza, and the young prince was taught together with his companions, who probably numbered around 30 students. A big class. This was a closed school, a boarding school of sorts. A sense of the seriousness with which Aristotle performed his duties can be gleaned from the fact that he composed two treatises in honor of Alexander, “On Kingship” and "On Colonies" as guidebooks for the prince, as well as editing a copy of Homer’s “Iliad” specifically for Alexander’s use — the so-called “casket copy” (presumably because it was small enough to fit inside his casket).
ellauri099.html on line 213: It leads one to ponder the awkward proximity between philosophy and political power. It is unclear whether the school charged fees but, given its vast wealth, it probably didn’t need to. It sounds a little like Harvard, doesn’t it?
ellauri099.html on line 219: In the northeast corner of the Lyceum, there was a garden, which possibly led to the peripatos, or shaded walk from which the promenading Peripatetic school derived its name. Indeed, there were gardens in all the earlier philosophical schools, in the schools of Miletus on the present-day Turkish coast, and allegedly in the Pythagorean schools in southern Italy. Plato’s Academy also had a garden. And later, the school of Epicurus was simply called “The Garden.” Theophrastus, a keen botanist like Aristotle who did so much to organize the library and build up its scientific side (with maps, globes, specimens and such like), eventually retired to his garden, which was close by.
ellauri099.html on line 221: What was the garden for? Was it a space for leisure, strolling and quiet dialectical chitchat? Was it a mini-laboratory for botanical observation and experimentation? Or was it — and I find this the most intriguing possibility — an image of paradise? The ancient Greek word paradeisos appears to be borrowed etymologically from Persian, and it is said that Darius the Great had a "paradise garden," with the kinds of flora and fauna with which we are familiar from the elaborate design of carpets and rugs. A Persian carpet is like a memory theater of paradise. It is possible that Milesian workers and thinkers had significant contact with the Persian courts at Susa and Persepolis. Maybe the whole ancient Greek philosophical fascination with gardens is a Persian borrowing, and an echo of the influence of their expansive empire. But who knows?
ellauri099.html on line 226: Very low rope barriers separated off areas that visitors were not meant to visit. I looked around for a guard, saw no one, and stepped onto the green moss and made my way quietly to the location of Aristotle’s library. On my hands and knees, I saw the ground was littered with tiny delicate snail shells, no bigger than a fingernails, scattered like empty scholars’ backpacks. My partner gave me one, and I put it in my pocket. I had it on my desk right in front of me as I was writing this. Inadvertently, I crushed it to pieces under the weight of one of Mr. Staikos’s huge tomes on the history of libraries. There’s probably a moral in this, but it escapes me. The moral is this: fucking Americans, keep your fat butts and greedy fingers off European soil!
ellauri099.html on line 235: Ferranten teiniheroiini Gianní käy kiimaista teologista keskustelua söpön Roberton kaa. Roberto on kuvattu Robert Kennedyn tapaisexi jeesushahmoxi. Kivisaaressa kesällä 1968 iskemättömät tytöt itkivät kun tuli uutinen Robertin murhasta. Sijaiskärsimystä.
ellauri099.html on line 244: Roberto pudisteli kevyesti päätään, ironia katosi, mutta ihanan laineileva tukka ei mennyt sekaisin. Näin hän suurin piirtein vastasi, tämä on vain tiivistelmä, olin kiihtynyt enkä muista kaikkea tarkasti, joten antaa Elena-tädin täydentää unohtuneet kohdat:
ellauri099.html on line 249: ironia palasi Roberton silmiin, ja ilokseni tunsin, että äkkiiyrkkä tyylini kiinnosti häntä. Hyvin tuntuu etenevän.
ellauri099.html on line 278: Hetkisen minusta tuntui, että Roberto vaistosi sinnikkään yritykseni, ja se sai hänen silmänsä kimaltelemaan kiihtymyxestä. Sen sepaluxen kohdalla alkoi näkyä mykkiä nykiviä merkkejä.
ellauri099.html on line 287: Roberto ei nauranut ja minä sain tuskin pidäteltyä hermostuneen törähdyxen. Hän jatkoi:
ellauri099.html on line 294: Tällä kertaa Roberto pieraisi, me kolme tyttöä haistelimme. Roopen lähdettyä Angela tarrasi kateellisesti käsivarteeni: "Teit vaikutuxen!" hän huudahti tekoinnoissaan. "Pötyä", sanoin tyytyväisenä kuin blondi elokuvassa Blondin kosto.
ellauri099.html on line 569: ISTPs are observant artisans with an understanding of mechanics and an interest in troubleshooting. They approach their environments with a flexible logic, looking for practical solutions to the problems at hand.
ellauri100.html on line 28: Wincent was not mad, he had problems
ellauri100.html on line 40: Weighing up evidence, including his many letters, they analyzed competing theories that he had suffered from illnesses including epilepsy, cycloid psychosis, bipolar disorder, schizophrenia or borderline personality disorder. The panel concluded that the most probable diagnosis was more prosaic.
ellauri100.html on line 45: “This could come from alcohol intoxication, lack of sleep, work stress and troubles with Gauguin, who was going to leave – attachment being one of his problems in life. He has repeated episodes of psychosis but recovered completely in between.”
ellauri100.html on line 89: Ernst Kretschmer (* 8. Oktober 1888 in Wüstenrot bei Heilbronn; † 8. Februar 1964 in Tübingen) war ein deutscher Psychiater. Er erforschte die menschliche Konstitution und stellte eine Typenlehre auf. 1929 wurde er für den Nobelpreis für Physiologie oder Medizin nominiert.
ellauri100.html on line 93: Kretschmer opiskeli teologiaa, lääketiedettä ja filosofiaa Tübingenin, Münchenin sekä Hampurin yliopistoissa vuosina 1906–1912. Hän työskenteli vuodesta 1913 lähtien Robert Gauppin assistenttia Tübingenissa, missä hän suoritti habilitaatiotutkinnon 1918. Hän jatkoi Tübingenissa yliopiston lääketieteen yksikön apulaisjohtajana vuoteen 1926 saakka, jolloin hän siirtyi Marburgin yliopiston psykiatrisen klinikan johtajaksi. Vuosina 1946–1959 Kretschmer työskenteli Tübingenin yliopiston psykiatrian klinikan johtajaprofessorina. Uransa loppuajan Kretschmer työskenteli yksityisenä tutkijana omien konstituutiopsykologiaan ja työpsykologiaan keskittyvien töidensä parissa.
ellauri100.html on line 143: Mit seiner Konstitutionstypologie führte Kretschmer 1921 die Unterscheidung zwischen den Typen des Leptosomen, des Pyknikers und des Athletikers ein. Zwischen 1915 und 1921 entwickelte Kretschmer darauf basierend eine Methode zur Differenzialdiagnose von Schizophrenie und Manie. Für das normale Temperament des leptosomen Typs prägte er dabei den Begriff des „Schizothymen“ und eine stärkere Neigung zur Schizophrenie wie geringere Anfälligkeit für manisch-depressive Störungen, umgekehrt für den pyknischen. Der athletische Typ sei eher für Epilepsie anfällig. Wegen Kretschmers Korrelation zwischen Körpergestalt und Anfälligkeit für psychische Störungen wurde er 1929 für den Nobelpreis nominiert.
ellauri100.html on line 159: Based on a detailed study of frontal, dorsal and lateral photographs of 4000 male subjects of college age, a 3 dimensional scheme for describing human physique is formulated. Kretschmer´s constitutional typology is discarded in favor of one based on 3 first order variables or components, endomorphy, mesomorphy, and ectomorphy, each of which is found in an individual physique and indicated by one of a set of 3 numerals designating a somatotype or patterning of these morphological components. Seventy-six different somatotypes are described and illustrated. These somatotypical designations are objectively assigned on the basis of the use of 18 anthropometric indices. Second-order variables also isolated and studied are dysplasia, gynandromorphy, texture and hirsutism. Historical trends in constitutional research are summarized. A detailed description is given of the development of the somatotyping technique combining anthroposcopic and anthropometric methods. Reference is made to somatotyping with the aid of a specially devised machine. Topics discussed include: the choice of variables, morphological scales, a geometrical representation of somatotypes, the independence of components, correlational data, the problem of norms, the modifiability of a somatotype, hereditary and endocrine influences and the relation of constitution to temperament, mental disease, clinical studies, crime and delinquency, and the differential education of children. Descriptive sketches of variants of the ectomorphic components are given. Appendices list tables for somatotyping and a series of drawings of 9 female somatotypes. An annotated bibliography is followed by a more general one. 272 photographs and drawings illustrate the somatotypes. (PsycINFO Database Record (c) 2016 APA, all rights reserved)
ellauri100.html on line 252: Academics: Graduated from Big-Ten U in the early 1960s with a B.A. in Economics. Accepted for graduate study in economics at several top schools, including Chicago, M.I.T., and some Ivy League schools. Chose M.I.T. and soon regretted the choice: gray, rainy Cambridge and robotic mathematical approach to economics made for a depressing combination. Returned to alma mater to finish the academic year, then quit to join the (somewhat) “real world” and earn some money. Read: I flunked because I was too dense for M.I.T.
ellauri100.html on line 266: Post-retirement: Spent 18 months as the managing editor of an economics journal published by a privately funded, libertarian think-tank in D.C. — more for the meager wage than for the stimulation of working with semi-intelligent, intellectually doubtfully honest contributors and colleagues. Quit when this part-time job became too hot.
ellauri100.html on line 283: In my own life, my jobs have ranged from busing tables to serving as a corporate officer. I have spent time in the company of high-ranking government officials, high-priced and expert lawyers, brilliant scientists and academicians, and talented musicians and artisans.
ellauri100.html on line 285: In short, I have walked many streets of life and seen many facets of the human condition. I have been spared much; my personal history excludes the direct effects of war, disaster, and privation. And I have been content to settle for relative obscurity and comfort rather than fame and fortune, even though I might have attained them had I chosen to strive for them. (What a laugh!)
ellauri100.html on line 289: My personality is more aloof than openly empathic (see “Temperament”, below). Why, I cannot say. I do know that aloofness can be an avoidance mechanism for persons who are too easily overwhelmed by emotion. And I do have an emotional side that I usually avoid exposing to others. Let me just say that my ability to observe the human condition is not dulled by automatic empathy of the kind that I have seen so often in persons whose political views are based on nothing more than raw emotion. Nor am I animated by prolonged adolescent rebellion, guilt, or an inability to advance beyond collegiate leftism. I am self-aware and self-critical to a fault.
ellauri100.html on line 291: Finally, I am strongly inclined toward justice. And I mean justice, not “fairness”, which is an excuse for leveling. True justice consists of two things, and only two things: the enforcement of voluntary, mutual obligations, and the punishment of wrongdoing. (Why the enforcement if the obligations are voluntary? Ever think they might be only kinda semi-voluntary?)
ellauri100.html on line 293: What is the point of these recollections and glimpses of my character? It is to say that my upbringing, experiences, and personality give me an advantage when it comes to understanding the human condition and prescribing for its ills. This blog — in its very small way — is a place of refuge from uninformed emotion, prolonged adolescent rebellion, guilt, and a refusal (or inability) to change one’s political views for whatever reason — whether it is opportunism, obduracy, willful ignorance, simple stupidity, or an inability to admit error (even to oneself). Naah, why beat about the bush: I like to be visible and froth at the mouth, and with my credentials, this is the best I can do.
ellauri100.html on line 319: However, it was not momentous events but a bit of seemingly irrelevant analysis that administered the coup de grâce to my naïve “liberalism”. It happened in the early 1970s, when my boss asked me to concoct grand measures of effectiveness for the armed forces (i.e., summary measures of antisubmarine warfare capabilities, of tactical strike capabilities, and so on). I struggled with the problem, and made a good-faith effort to provide the measures. But in the end I had to report to my boss that he had given me “mission impossible”. Why? Because, no summary measure could capture the effects of the many factors that would determine the effectiveness of the armed forces: the enemy, the characteristics of his forces, the timing and geographic particulars of any engagement, and so on. (See “Hemibel Thinking” in this post for a précis of my argument.) That was the first time I got sacked. But I returned as soon as my boss got fired.
ellauri100.html on line 331: I have noticed that a leftist will accuse you of “hate” just for saying something contrary to the left-wing orthodoxy of the day. If you disagree with what I have to say here, but prefer to spew invective instead of offering a reasoned response, don’t bother to submit a comment — at least not until your rage has passed or your medication has taken effect. (My medication is working fine. It is curious how small the distance is between considered opinion and gobbledygook madness.) As it says in the sidebar, I will not publish incoherent, off-point, offensive, or abusive comments except my own. Nor will I lose any sleep for having denied you an outlet for your incoherence, irrelevance, offensiveness, or abusiveness. You can post it on your own blog or on any of the myriad, hate-filled, left-wing blogs that view murder as “choice,” government dictates as “liberty,” self-defense as a “war crime” (when it’s practiced by the U.S. or Israel), and the Constitution as a vehicle for implementing current left-wing orthodoxy.
ellauri100.html on line 359: {14:3} Qui loquitur veritatem in corde suo, qui non egit dolum in lingua sua: Nec fecit proximo suo malum, et opprobrium non accepit adversus proximos suos.
ellauri100.html on line 368: Why did fat Dana Scott fall out with Alfred Tarski? Why did he leave for Princeton and Alonso Church? Was it a gay fight over Richard Montague? They were not mad at one another, they had problems.
ellauri100.html on line 379: The person who chooses people as a source of energy probably prefers extraversion, while the person who prefers solitude to recover energy may tend toward introversion.
ellauri100.html on line 383: The person who has a natural preference for sensation probably describes himself first as practical, while the person who has a natural preference for intuition probably chooses to describe himself as innovative.
ellauri100.html on line 391: Persons who choose closure over open options are likely to be the judging types. Persons preferring to keep things open and fluid are probably the perceiving types. The J is apt to report a sense of urgency until he has made a pending decision, and then he can be at rest once the decision has been made. The F person, in contrast, is more apt to experience resistance to making a decision, wishing that more data could be accumulated as the basis for the decision. As a result, when a P person makes a decision, he may have a feeling of uneasiness and restlessness, while the J person, in the same situation, may have a feeling of ease and satisfaction.
ellauri100.html on line 435: Note that there is a great deal of controversy as to the exact meaning of what these reaction time associations actually mean, so please take your results with a grain of salt. While a great deal of previous research has validated the use of such procedures to detect associations of group level bias across groups, the use of IAT procedures to measure individual ethicality is still in development and all of these procedures have been validated probibalistically, at the group level, rather than being validated as being absolutely diagnostic for individuals. That being said, many (though not all) people have found validity in their implicit scores and have found there to be some real psychological process that tracks implicit associations.
ellauri100.html on line 491: The scale is a measure of your general happiness level. Despite its simplicity, the scale has been found to do a good job of measuring people’s general state of “subjective well-being.” It is widely used, in many nations.
ellauri100.html on line 539: The other scale is the Subjective Numeracy Scale by Angela Fagerlin and colleagues, which measures individuals’ preference for numerical information. Numeracy (adapted from the term ‘literacy’) represents individuals’ ability to comprehend and use probabilities, ratios, and fractions. Traditional measures of numeracy ask people to perform mathematical operations, such as ‘If person A’s risk of getting a disease is 1% in 10 years, and person B’s risk is double that of A’s, what is B’s risk?’ However, some participants find these types of problems stressful and unpleasant, plus they are difficult to score in online studies. Subjective numeracy measures (like the scale you just took) are shown to be equally good measures of numeracy, without burdening participants.
ellauri100.html on line 547: The idea behind this scale is that objective factual knowledge may be an important factor in studies about political issues and reasoning. It may be that people who are more informed about politics (whether they’re liberal or conservative) think and reason differently about moral or political issues than people who are less informed. For instance, are people who are more informed more or less likely to objectively evaluate political arguments? We suspect that, ironically, people with more political knowledge may be less objective when it comes to a number of information processes (see recommended reading below).
ellauri100.html on line 565: It should be noted that my slightly positive score probably was influenced by the order in which choices were presented to me. Initially, pleasant concepts were associated with photos of European-Americans. I became used to that association, and so found that it affected my reaction time when I was faced with pairings of pleasant concepts and photos of African-Americans. The bottom line: My slight preference for European-Americans probably is an artifact of test design.
ellauri100.html on line 680: Rusetti oli vapaaehtoistyöntekijä 1859-1870 Maria Magdalenan charitytalossa Highgaten vankilassa, ex-prostituuttien turvapaikassa, ja onkin ehotettu että Menninkäisten markkinat olis sieltä inspiroitu, eli ne menninkäiset oliskin niitä "langenneita naisia". Siinä on paralleeleja Coleridgen Aku Ankan kuuluisaxi tekemään "Ikivanhan merimiehen tarinaan" ("Ammuin nuolen ilmoihin, albatrossia haavoitin", nyyhkii Aku veden pärskyessä silmistä). Molemmat runot lässyttää kiusauxesta, synnistä ja sijaiskärsimyxellä lunastuxesta kuin Jari Sairasvyö. Höpönhöpön, tää Wikipedian sepustus on sumutusta. Rusetti taisi tykätä langenneista naisista. Naisista kyllä aivan varmasti. Toi Goblin Market runo on aika selkeästi homoeroottinen.
ellauri100.html on line 689: Goblin Market
ellauri100.html on line 694: Maids heard the goblins cry:
ellauri100.html on line 735: “We must not look at goblin men,
ellauri100.html on line 739: “Come buy,” call the goblins
ellauri100.html on line 740: Hobbling down the glen.
ellauri100.html on line 743: You should not peep at goblin men.”
ellauri100.html on line 769: One like a wombat prowl’d obtuse and furry,
ellauri100.html on line 784: Turn’d and troop’d the goblin men,
ellauri100.html on line 809: Cried “Pretty Goblin” still for “Pretty Polly;”—
ellauri100.html on line 825: Then suck’d their fruit globes fair or red:
ellauri100.html on line 844: In the haunts of goblin men.
ellauri100.html on line 938: Once discerning even one goblin
ellauri100.html on line 939: Racing, whisking, tumbling, hobbling;
ellauri100.html on line 959: That goblin cry,
ellauri100.html on line 977: She never caught again the goblin cry:
ellauri100.html on line 979: She never spied the goblin men
ellauri100.html on line 1011: Caught the goblins’ cry:
ellauri100.html on line 1015: She heard the tramp of goblin men,
ellauri100.html on line 1039: Laugh’d every goblin
ellauri100.html on line 1041: Came towards her hobbling,
ellauri100.html on line 1045: Clucking and gobbling,
ellauri100.html on line 1064: Bob at our cherries,
ellauri100.html on line 1123: Lash’d by tides obstreperously,—
ellauri100.html on line 1137: Though the goblins cuff’d and caught her,
ellauri100.html on line 1170: As if she fear’d some goblin man
ellauri100.html on line 1173: But not one goblin scurried after,
ellauri100.html on line 1184: Squeez’d from goblin fruits for you,
ellauri100.html on line 1185: Goblin pulp and goblin dew.
ellauri100.html on line 1189: And had to do with goblin merchant men.”
ellauri100.html on line 1200: Thirsty, canker’d, goblin-ridden?”—
ellauri100.html on line 1214: Rent all her robe, and wrung
ellauri100.html on line 1296: Algirdaxen iskä Julius 1882–1942 oli ope ja yleni koulutarkastajaxi. Se oli kotoisin suvakkien alueelta Liettuasta. Algirdaxen äiskä Konstancija Greimienė oli 4v nuorempi sihteerikkö. Ne asui alux Tulassa Ryssissä, mutta karkasivat sieltä vallankumouxen tullessa. Algirdas puhui pelkkää liettuaa ennen koulua. Koulussa se oppi ranskaa ja saxaa ja lukiossa luki Nietscheä ja Schopenhaueria, voi ei. Se vaihtoi koulua kuin mustalainen paitaa, ja päätyi lukemaan lakia Konowiiin (Kaunas), mistä se ajelehti lingvistiikkaan. Se valmistui Grenoblesta 1939 murretutkimuxella. Kun 2. maailmansota alkoi se joutui kuzuntoihin Liettuaan.
ellauri100.html on line 1358: 1975 eli kuusikymppisenä se kirjoitti omaelämäkerrän omaperäisellä nimellä "Roland Barthes". 1977 se sai ylennyxen Collège de Franceen. Liettualainen jäi HESS:iin kykkimään. Rollon rakas äiskä kuoli 85-vuotiaana samana vuonna. Tää oli Rollolle kova isku. Sen viimeinen isompi aikaansaannos, Camera Lucida (vähän niinko camera obscuran vastakohta - semiootikot rakastaa näitä oppositioita) on osittain valokuvakirja ja osittain kirja äiskän kuvista (vaikka niitä ei ole kirjassa mukana). 1980 Roland Barthes törmäsi pesula-autoon ja kuoli kuukautta myöhemmin kärsimiinsä vammoihin. Sen pituinen se.
ellauri101.html on line 42: Joseph John Campbell (March 26, 1904 – October 30, 1987) was an American professor of literature at Sarah Lawrence College who worked in comparative mythology and comparative religion. His work covers many aspects of the human experience. Campbell's best-known work is his book The Hero with a Thousand Faces (1949), in which he discusses his theory of the journey of the archetypal hero shared by world mythologies, termed the monomyth.
ellauri101.html on line 61: Campbell died at his home in Honolulu, Hawaii, on October 30, 1987, from complications of esophageal cancer. He is buried in O'ahu Cemetery, Honolulu, among many many more grateful dead.
ellauri101.html on line 70: Campbell outlined the stages of the monomyth in his classic book The Hero with a Thousand Faces (audiobook). Read it later when you got time. Judging by the toc, it is a ripoff from the structuralists.
ellauri101.html on line 155: Joseph Campbell, arguably the greatest mythologist of the twentieth century, was certainly one of our greatest storytellers. This masterfully crafted book interweaves conversations between Campbell and some of the people he inspired, including poet Robert Bly, anthropologist Angeles Arrien, filmmaker David Kennard, Doors drummer John Densmore, psychiatric pioneer Stanislov Grof, Nobel laureate Roger Guillemen, and others. Campbell reflects on subjects ranging from the origins and functions of myth, the role of the artist, and the need for ritual to the ordeals of love and romance. With poetry and humor, Campbell recounts his own quest and conveys the excitement of his lifelong exploration of our mythic traditions, what he called “the one great story of mankind.” Hemmetti nää sen sankarit on lähes yhtä tuntemattomia kuin se ize.
ellauri101.html on line 239: Noniin, takaisin Greimasin satukaavaan. Heimut sehän on suoraan mun omasta TMAD-kässäristä tuttu faktitiivisuuden kaava jossa yhden transitiivisen tapahtuman aiheuttajana on toinen välitys. Siinä perussiirrossa siirtyy joku objekti eli esine joltain lähteeltä jollekin kohteelle. Faktitiiviosassa joku lähettäjä lähettää matkaan tekijän joka saa aikaan ton sisennetyn tapahtuman jonkun vastaanottajan hyväxi. Siziinä voi olla vielä tämmönen avustajaosa tai instrumentaalinen tapahtuma jossa joku avustaja avustaa tota tekijää ja kenties vielä yxi jossa joku vastaustaja vastustaa sitä, jotta saadaan nollasummapeliä.
ellauri101.html on line 293: Sairasvyö on tunnettu räväköistä lausunnoistaan. Kun Suomen hallitus teki vuonna 2003 verouudistusta, Sairasvyö kehotti yrittäjiä ”verokapinaan”, nimitti silloista SDP:n puoluesihteeriä Eero Heinäluomaa valehtelijaksi ja vaati Suomen Yrittäjien toimitusjohtaja Jussi Järventauksen eroa. Sairasvyö esitti veroboikottia ja muita kostotoimia valtiota vastaan.
ellauri101.html on line 312: Well, I should probably warn ya, I´ll be just fine (Yeah!)
ellauri101.html on line 526: Rotvälska är ett allmänt begrepp i svenskan för att benämna ett obegripligt och/eller förvirrande språk/dialekt. Uttrycket kommer närmast från tyska och danska, i vilka ordet snarast betecknade "tjuvspråk". I svenska är ordet känt sedan 1700-talet. Efterleden -välsk, (från ett gammalt germanskt ord för allt främmande och icke-germanskt), i betydelsen "utländsk" förekommer ordet också i valnöt, välsk, valack och Wales.
ellauri101.html on line 532: Rotwelsch was formerly common among travelling craftspeople and vagrants. The language is built on a strong substratum of German, but contains numerous words from other languages, notably from various German dialects, including Yiddish, as well as from Romany languages, notably Sintitikes. There are also significant influences from Judæo-Latin, the ancient Jewish language spoken in the Roman Empire. Rotwelsch has also played a great role in the development of the Yeniche language. In form and development it closely parallels the commercial speech ("shopkeeper language") of German-speaking regions. During the 19th and 20th century, Rotwelsch was the object of linguistic repression, with systematic investigation by the German police. Fucking Nazis! Examples:
ellauri101.html on line 552: Generation is also often used synonymously with cohort in social science; under this formulation it means "people within a delineated population who experience the same significant events within a given period of time". The impressionable years hypothesis is a theory of political psychology that posits that individuals form durable political attitudes and party affiliations during late adolescence and early adulthood. Sukupolvet on olleet globaalisia vasta sitten kun sodatkin.
ellauri101.html on line 566: Mut multa on jäänyt kyllä kokonaisia sukupolvia välistä. Ihan kuin olisin nukkunut niiden ohi niinkun Siebenschläfer tai sen amerikkalainen kollega Rip van Winkle. Kuka esim oli Kurt Cobain? Tai se joku Amy Vaatehuone?
ellauri101.html on line 570: Kurt Donald Cobain oli yhdysvaltalainen laulaja-lauluntekijä ja muusikko, joka tuli tunnetuksi grunge-yhtye Nirvanan solistina ja kitaristina. Mä en tiedä yhtään ainoata Nirvanan biisiä.
ellauri101.html on line 576: X-sukupolveen kuuluvat vuosina 1964–1979 syntyneet ikäluokat. Sukupolven yhteisiä suuria kokemuksia olivat Neuvostoliiton romahtaminen, Berliinin muurin murtuminen, Yhdysvaltojen jääminen maailman ainoaksi supervallaksi, 1990-luvun lama ja massatyöttömyys sekä globalisaatio. Monia X-sukupolven edustajia yhdistää lapsuudessa tai nuoruudessa koettu vanhempien avioero.
ellauri101.html on line 578: Siinä missä suuria ikäluokkia on sanottu viimeiseksi moderniksi sukupolveksi, joiden elämää on leimannut jatkuva optimismi ja kehitysusko, X-sukupolvea on pidetty ensimmäisenä postmodernina sukupolvena, jonka elämää leimaa pessimismi ja epäluottamus tulevaisuuteen 1990-luvulla monia rock-yhtyeitä jopa leimattiin X-sukupolven edustajiksi ja muun muassa Nirvana-yhtyeen keulahahmoa Kurt Cobainia pidettiin sen äänitorvena.
ellauri101.html on line 613: As the first social generation to have grown up with access to the Internet and portable digital technology from a young age, members of Generation Z have been dubbed "digital natives", even though they are not necessarily digitally literate. Moreover, the negative effects of screen time are most pronounced on adolescents compared to younger children. Compared to previous generations, members of Generation Z in some developed nations tend to be well-behaved, abstemious, and risk-averse. They tend to live more slowly than their predecessors when they were their age, have lower rates of teenage pregnancies, and consume alcohol less often, but not necessarily addictive drugs. Teenagers nowadays seem more concerned with academic performance and job prospects, and are better at delaying gratification than their counterparts from the 1960s, despite concerns to the contrary. On the other hand, sexting among adolescents has grown in prevalence though the consequences of this remain poorly understood. Meanwhile, youth subcultures have been quieter, though not necessarily dead.
ellauri101.html on line 615: Globally, there is evidence that the average age of pubertal onset among girls has decreased considerably compared to the twentieth century, with implications for their welfare and their future. In addition, adolescents and young adults have higher rates of allergies, higher awareness and diagnoses of mental health problems, and are more likely to be sleep-deprived. In many countries, youths are more likely to have intellectual disabilities and psychiatric disorders than older people. In some European nations, they are facing declining cognitive abilities, especially among the cognitive elites.
ellauri101.html on line 625: Some anticipate the global impact of the COVID-19 pandemic will become this generation´s defining event, and have suggested the name Generation C either for those born during, or growing up during, the pandemic.
ellauri101.html on line 626: As of 2015, there were some two and a half million people born every week around the globe; Generation Alpha is expected to reach two billion by 2025.
ellauri101.html on line 635: The United Nations estimated in mid-2019 that the human population will reach about 9.7 billion by 2050, a downward revision from an older projection to account for the fact that fertility has been falling faster than previously thought in the developing world. The global annual rate of growth has been declining steadily since the late twentieth century, dropping to about one percent in 2019. In fact, by the late 2010s, 83 of the world´s countries had sub-replacement fertility.
ellauri101.html on line 637: During the early to mid-2010s, more babies were born to Christian mothers than to those of any other religion in the world, reflecting the fact that Christianity remained the most popular religion in existence. However, it was the Muslims who had a faster rate of growth. About 33% of the world´s babies were born to Christians who made up 31% of the global population between 2010 and 2015, compared to 31% to Muslims, whose share of the human population was 24%. During the same period, the religiously unaffiliated (including atheists and agnostics) made up 16% of the population but gave birth to only 10% of the world´s children.
ellauri101.html on line 649: Brazil´s fertility rate has fallen from 6.3 in 1960 to 1.7 in 2020. For this reason, the nation´s population is projected to decline by the end of the twenty-first century. According to a 2012 study, soap operas featuring small families have contributed to the growing acceptance of having just a few children in a predominantly Catholic country. However, Brazil continues to have relatively high rates of adolescent pregnancies, and the government is working to address this problem.
ellauri101.html on line 651: Many members of Generation Alpha have grown up using smartphones and tablets as part of their childhood entertainment with many being exposed to devices as a soothing distraction or educational aids. Screen time among infants, toddlers, and preschoolers exploded during the 2010s. Some 90% of young children used a handheld electronic device by the age of one; in some cases, children started using them when they were only a few months old. Using smartphones and tablets to access video streaming services such as YouTube Kids and free or reasonably low budget mobile games became a popular form of entertainment for young children. A report by Common Sense media suggested that the amount of time children under nine in the United States spent using mobile devices increased from 15 minutes a day in 2013 to 48 minutes in 2017. Research by the children´s charity Childwise suggested that a majority of British three and four year olds owned an Internet-connected device by 2018.
ellauri101.html on line 676: Grunge oli sen Kurt Cobain vainajan juttuja joka lässähti kun Kurre teki seppukun. Seattlen vaihtoehtorokkia. Grunge sai paljon vaikutteista hardcore punkista, heavy metalista ja indie rockista. Grungen tunnusmerkeiksi mainitaan usein kitaran ”likainen” soundi, raskas rummutus ja masennusta ilmentävät sanoitukset, jotka heijastelivat yhdysvaltalaisen ”X-sukupolven” tuntemuksia. Grungen musiikillisina edelläkävijöinä ja esikuvina on pidetty muun muassa Black Sabbathia ja Neil Youngia.
ellauri101.html on line 682: Mulla on lyhyet hiuxet ja pitkähkö vaikka harvanlainen takkuinen parta. Vaattet ei ole kirpputorilta vaikka vaikuttavat siltä. Ne on kuosiltaan yhtä vanhahtavia kuin mä. Flanellipaidat ja villapaidat on Sysmän rytkyjä. Pipoja en sietänyt ennen kuiin Helmi kutoi mulle niitä. Farkkuja en revi muuta kuin vahingossa, ja sitten paikkaan ne. Jos harvoin ostan uudet ostan peltipönkköjä. Mä ostin Conversen koriskengät Bostonissa 1970-luvulla. Ei mulla niitä enää ole. Juu ei, emmä ole kyllä grungetyylinen. Enempi kuulostan mielensäpahoittajalta, vaikkenmä kyllä tykkää tollasesta mökkinaapurimallisesta karvalakistakaan. Sitä käyttää karvalakkipuolen kaljanryystäjät ja karvalakkilähetystöt. Gilmore Girlsin Jacob on kai grungetyylinen.
ellauri101.html on line 697: Amerikassa brändäys oli mennyt ihan järjettömiin esim kouluissa. Lapset kazo pakkomainontaa tunnilla teeveestä jota ei voi edes kääntää hiljalle. Atlantalainen koulupoika erotettiin koulusta kun se oli tullut Cokispäivänä kouluun Pepsipaita päällä. Meillä se on varmaan ajan kysymys jota ratkoo seuraava oikeistohallitus jahka keskenjäänyt terveyden ja liikenteen yxityistäminen on saatu kuntoon. Tai tarvizeeko enää keskusradiota kun hommat hoituu paremmin pursonoidusti mobiilin ja Googlen avulla. Jäljellä olevien kansalaisyhteiskunnan jäänteiden kuten hallinnon ja oikeuslaitoxen korruptio ovat hyvässä vauhdissa kiitos mm Pöystin ja Yli-Viikarin ponnistelujen.
ellauri102.html on line 52: Daniel Yankelovich, Public Opinion Expert and UC San Diego Supporter, Has Died. Dubbed the “dean of American pollsters,” Yankelovich was perhaps best known for starting The New York Times/Yankelovich poll—now known as The New York Times/CBS News poll—and for co-founding the not-for-profit Public Agenda more than 40 years ago. He left a multimillion dollar bequest to endow the Yankelovich Center for Social Science Research. The Yankelovich Center is devoted to using social science to find practical solutions to the nation's most pressing problems. The most pressing problem now as ever is to increase young upward mobility. Yankelovizh was unwavering in his commitment to the American Dream which he saw as a promise to each generation of Americans that they too can improve their circumstances, their lives and gain economic security.
ellauri102.html on line 110: Nuorille pitää siis olla myötäsukaan ja myydä niille mieluisia brändejä. No sehän käy. Ja kävikin. Nyt on 1/4 vuosisata kulunut X-sukupolvesta, mikä nyt on alfa-nuorisolla mielessä? Kysy Greta Thunbergiltä. Luontoystävällisyys käy tästä lähin kaupaxi. Luantobrändejä syntyy kuin jalkasientä sateella. Ei haittaa niinkauankuin voitot saadaan kotio.
ellauri102.html on line 111: Moniarvoisuus sopi globalisaatioon kuin käsine, tai yhden koon sukahousut jotka muotoutuu jokaiseen käyttäjään. Survivalkamat sopii ihan yhtä hyvin, kohta päästään laskuttamaan juomavedestä ja ilmasta. Ainiin juomavedestähän laskutetaan jo täyttä päätä. Mixkä ilmankaan pitäs olla ilmasta? Coronapotilaille sitä myydäänkin jo pullokaupalla.
ellauri102.html on line 115: Ennen kuin samoja merkkituotteita pystytään myymään samalla tavoin ympäri maailmaa, nuorten itsensä tāytyy kuitenkin samastua uuteen ryhmäänsä. Siitä syystä useimmat maapallonlaajuiset mainoskampanjat keskittyvät yhä vielā tehokkaammin juuri globaalin nuorison idean markkinointiin. Tämā merkitsee erirotuisten, toisiinsa sulautuvien kasvojen kaleidoskooppia, rastapalmikoita, pinkkejä hiuksia, hennalla värjättyjā kämmeniä, lävistyksiä ja tatuointeja, mukana muutama kansallislippu ja välahdys vieraskielisistä katukilvistä, vähän kiinalaista ja arabialaista kirjoitusta, siellä täällä jokin (ja ehkä toinenkin :) englanninkielinen sana, ja kaiken kuorrutuksena kerros sähköistä musiikkia. Fredan luontoaiheisen muotikaupan ikkunassa ei ollut ainoatakaan suomen kielen sanaa, vaikka kauppiaat oli valtalinjan koiria.
ellauri102.html on line 205: obileMasterAt3x.jpg" width="150px" />
ellauri102.html on line 234: Ei vittu, Kurt Cobain otti Wal-Martin pyynnöstä sikiöt pois takakannessa ja muutti kappaleen
ellauri102.html on line 318: Jeffrey Sachs ja Paul Krugman hinkuu vaan lisää hiostamoja. Niiden mielestä just niissä hikiset vinkuintiaanit ja rullaturvat neekerit pääsee eroon uuvuttavasta maanviljelystä elintasohissin nappuloita painamaan. Taitaa äijät olla Israelin poikia. Niille on kolmas maailma täynnä käyttämättömiä filistealaisia. Joo oikeassa olin, Ruozin Akatemian palkizemia kusipäitä kuten Bob Zimmermann. Vetäkää vaan työlaisnaisten kusikassit päähänne ja tukehtukaa sinne, miljardöörien kumihanskat, liikemiesvainukoirat. Ruozi on erilainen kuin muut pohjoismaat, sanoo Mengele, se on pikku-Amerikka. Sixi siellä kuolee niin helvetisti matuköyhimyxiä. Loppuunkäytettyä apinamateriaalia.
ellauri102.html on line 325: obal_meeting_in_Austrian_Foreign_Ministries_in_Vienna_%2849120446508%29_%28cropped%29.jpg/749px-FMSTAN_%26_SPIDER_Global_meeting_in_Austrian_Foreign_Ministries_in_Vienna_%2849120446508%29_%28cropped%29.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri102.html on line 345: Hakukone näytti että Pikkarin 1999 peukuttama Squamishin McDonaldsin ensimmäinen ammattiliitto oli hajonnut jo ennen ekaa sopimusta 20v sitten. Mikään ei ole muuttunut 20 vuodessa, enintään entisestään huonontunut. Väliaikaisuus, määräaikaisuus, osa-aikaisuus ja nollasopimuxet vapauttavat työnantajan sosiaalimaxuista ja työnottajan sosiaalieduista. Ainoat lisärikat sopassa ovat robotiikka ja tekoäly, jotka vapauttavat entistä useamman työn uuvuttaman työn raskaan raadannasta.
ellauri102.html on line 361: Tää on itkettävän säälittävää, ja raivostuttavaa. Raivostuttavimpia on tollaset talousnobelistit niinkun se suomenruozalainen Bengt Holmströmin turvelo joka kehtaa selittää et tää on vaan business as usual, tervettä liikemiesvainua. Et peliteoriakin todistaa mix vahvemmalle pitää tulla enemmän. Niihän se tekee tietysti, se on Darwinilla tiedossa.
ellauri102.html on line 404: Naomi Klein (s. 8. toukokuuta 1970 Montreal, Kanada) on kanadalainen toimittaja, kirjailija, professori ja aktivisti. Hänet tunnetaan erityisesti globalisaatiota ja kapitalismia arvostelevista teoksistaan No Logo (2000), Tuhokapitalismin nousu (2007) ja Tämä muuttaa kaiken (2014). Klein on vuodesta 2018 viestinnän, kulttuurin, feminismin ja fennistiikan tutkimuksen professori Rutgersin yliopistossa. Siellä se jatkaa Auli Hakulisen numeron 42 saappaissa.
ellauri102.html on line 408: Klein opiskeli Toronton yliopistossa, mutta keskeytti opinnot kolmantena vuonna ja aloitti The Globe and Mailin palveluksessa. 23-vuotiaana hän siirtyi This Magazineen ja siitä myöhemmin That Magazineen.
ellauri102.html on line 420: Klein spent much of her teenage years in shopping malls, obsessed with designer labels.
ellauri102.html on line 429: La tuerie de l'École polytechnique est une tuerie antiféministe en milieu scolaire qui a eu lieu le 6 décembre 1989 à l'École polytechnique de Montréal, au Québec (Canada). Marc Lépine (né Gamil Gharbi), âgé de vingt-cinq ans, ouvre le feu sur vingt-huit personnes, tuant quatorze femmes et blessant treize autres personnes (9 femmes et 4 hommes)[1], avant de se suicider. Ce féminicide de masse est perpétré en moins de vingt minutes à l'aide d'une carabine obtenue légalement. Il s'agit de la tuerie en milieu scolaire la plus meurtrière de l'histoire du Canada.
ellauri102.html on line 463: The Problem: The problem with this ad campaign was the fact that is promoted “body shaming”. Many feminist groups noted that the wording of the ad insinuates that the body in the picture is the only “acceptable” beach body. This means that any other body type not like the one in the picture is “unready”.
ellauri102.html on line 471: The Problem: Controversy for this ad campaign arose in many different ways. The first was the use of world leaders without their consent. In fact, one of the ads features Pope Benedict XVI kissing a top Egyptian imam which was quickly removed after being condemned by the Vatican.
ellauri102.html on line 479: The Problem: During the time the advert was released, there were many protests and riots taking place in America over the #BlackLivesMatter campaign. The ad took a lot of “inspiration” from these protests and fundamentally undermined the whole point of the protests. In addition to this, the ad also received a lot of criticism for how Pepsi was responsible for “saving the day.”
ellauri102.html on line 487: The Problem: As you can probably see from the advert above, the choice of words for this campaign was very poorly chosen. To make things worse, they specifically aimed the campaign at people in the Middle East which caused many people to call the advert racist.
ellauri102.html on line 495: The Problem: The controversy caused by the advert is as clear as day. Not only is the advert racist, but it’s also insulting to viewers.
ellauri102.html on line 501: The Problem: The main issue with this campaign is that it came across as very anti-police to most of the general public. In fact, there were reports of people complaining and becoming very aggressive in the stores, resulting in LUSH having to call the police. Due to the negative reception of the ads, LUSH ended up pulling them and releasing an official statement on their website.
ellauri102.html on line 507: The Problem: After Kaepernick refused to stand for the national anthem, many viewers became angry at him and viewed him as anti-American. The fact that Nike was using him in their ads made many people believe Nike was also anti-American. This sparked a lot of controversies online with many social media users posting pictures of themselves destroying Nike products, along with the hashtag #JustBurnIt.
ellauri102.html on line 570: 'Life's too short to be ashamed for being weird,' says Lake Pantyless Pissing's Carly Stasko. After Stasko lost her job, she and her family moved from Toronto to their northern cottage at the start of the pandemic.
ellauri105.html on line 98: New Yorkerin Washingtonin kirjeenvaihtaja, juutalainen Susan Gasser (sori, freudilainen lipsahdus) Glasser on izekin kauhistunut, vaikka onkin olevinaan demokraattinen. Susan Glasser is the daughter of Lynn (née Schreiber) and Stephen Glasser (of Jewish ancestry). Susan on amerikkalainen vastine Hoblan yrmylle Laurénille. Se on ryssävihanen ja salaoikislainen taantumuxen edustaja. Se kirjottaa New Yorkerin varakkaiden lukijoiden mielixi:
ellauri105.html on line 137: Rane Robinson:
ellauri105.html on line 494: "Tuli vähän tonttuiltua" tunnusti Mefodi äidille. "Pantiin kuivatelakalle". Niinpä Mefodista tuli 60-luvun lopulla Karpaateilla sijainneen Pyhän Jobin luostarin perinteen jatkajan, Yhdysvaltoihin siirtyneen Pyhän Kolminaisuuden nimeä kantaneen luostarin alaisuudessa toimivan alkuperäisen luostarin nimisen, Pyhän Jobin luostarin pappi ja rippi-isä. Pappismunkki Mefodi (Matti Lehmonen) (Kuva pappismunkki Mefodin albumista, © Valamon luostari)
ellauri105.html on line 530: Åbo Akademin rahoittama ruozinkielinen sos.dem professori Kimmo Grönholm puolustaa Hoblassa rapautuvaa keskiluokkaa ja sen hiekkalinnaa, edustuxellista demokratiaa. Missä sos.dem nilkit ja kesk.kok. nilkit vuorotellen tarttuu vallankahvasta ja kääntää hyvinvointilaivaa pari piirua omaan rantaan päin. No onhan se siitä hyvä että kusipäitä vaihdetaan edes neljän vuoden välein vähän tuulettumaan hangelle. Kusitolppia ne on siltikin, se haju ei niistä haihdu tamppaamallakaan. Kimmonen ja Immonen riitelivät 2015 siitä kumpi haisee pahemmin.
ellauri105.html on line 543: Jee sittenhän Kimmosta tulee ruozinsuomalainen mamu! Niitähän kansallismielisessä maassa saa tappaa koronaan ja muutenkin vainota. Nej men ojoj! Det tjänar Kimmo inte längre att flytta till Sverige! Enligt HBL fre 9.5.2021 är "oborstade nationalister plötsligt rumsrena" i Sverige med! Invandringskritiska nationalkonservativa partier har i de nordiska länderna vuxit och blivit så stora att de blir svårare att negligera. Ny är det hög tid för Kimmo att komma ut till undsättning för de hotade sandslottena.
ellauri106.html on line 35: Some consider his best novel, My Life as a Man. He was awarded the 2010 National Humanities Medal by President Barack Obama at the White House in 2011. He died of congestive heart failure on May 22, 2018, at age 85. True — he never won the Nobel Prize for literature. D´oh.
ellauri106.html on line 52: It was not Bailey’s role as a biographer to pass judgment on his subject. He needed only try to understand him, and to make us understand him, too. “Why shouldn’t I be treated as seriously as Colette on this?” Roth had asked Miller, of the sex question. “She gave a blow job to this guy in the railway station. Who gives a fuck about that? . . . That doesn’t tell me anything. What did hand jobs mean to her?”
ellauri106.html on line 54: So what did sex mean to Roth? Bailey’s book is so caught up in its obsessive cataloguing of paramours that the forest gets lost in an endless succession of trees. The place where Roth found insight into his own character was on the double bag. Over and over, in the novels, he transformed pro life. Bailey’s prurient, exhaustively literal version of that life reverses the effect, and the result is sadly diminishing. What he never grasps is Roth the artist, with his powers of imagination, of expression, of language—what made him worthy of biography at all.
ellauri106.html on line 67: In October 1956, Philip Roth met the secretary Margaret Martinson Williams in Chicago, whom he married in February 1959. The divorced mother of two children of completely different social origins, who was four years older than him, initially gave Roth the feeling of both a challenge and a liberation. Later, however, the problems and arguments in their relationship increased, which the writer dealt with in retrospect in works such as When She Was Good ( Lucy Nelson or Die Moral, 1967) or My Life As a Man (Mein Leben als Mann, 1974). In his autobiography The Facts (The Facts, 1988) Margaret even advanced as Josie Jensen to the “counter-self”, to the “arch enemy and nemesis ” of the author. The couple separated in 1963, but Margaret Roth refused to consent to a divorce. Five years later she died in a car accident.
ellauri106.html on line 76: In 1987, in the loneliness of Connecticut, Roth experienced a breakdown caused by a sleeping pill with hallucinatory side effects. He made the experience, as well as the trial of the concentration camp guard John Demjanjuk in Jerusalem, whom he had followed as an observer, the starting point of the 1993 novel Operation Shylock, the encounter between a fictional Philip Roth and his doppelganger. The writer also felt increasingly isolated in London and returned to New York, where he moved into an apartment on the Upper West Side. He took over from 1988 to 1991 a professor of literature at Hunter College of the City University of New York. In 1990 he married his longtime partner Claire Bloom, but the marriage was divorced in 1994 after Roth's growing estrangement and severe depression, including a stay in a psychiatric clinic. Bloom dealt with the problematic relationship two years later in her memoir Leaving a Doll's House .
ellauri106.html on line 80: In the early 2000s, Roth met the young assistant editor Lisa Halliday at his literary agency Andrew Wylie. A love affair developed from having lunch together, which culminated in a lifelong deep friendship. Halliday processed the love and friendship for Roth in the highly acclaimed autobiographical inspired novel Asymmetrie, which she completed in 2016. Roth, who read the manuscript, liked it.
ellauri106.html on line 84: In October 2012, Roth announced to the French culture magazine Les Inrocks that Nemesis was his last book. At the age of 74 he began to reread his favorite authors such as Dostoyevsky, Turgenew, Conrad and Hemingway as well as his own works. He came to the conclusion that he had made the best of his possibilities and did not want to continue working as an author, read or talk about new literature.
ellauri106.html on line 90: The rudeness is not only a source of stylistic energy, but also a fundamental moral position, an attack on the state of inhumanity disguised as niceness, as Nathan Zuckerman puts it in The Anatomy Lesson. Roth is thus directed against the social forces of obedience, prohibition and oppression, essential components of mature adulthood, which is why Posnock recognizes an “art of immaturity” in which Roth disregards cultural barriers and abandons himself completely to aesthetic pleasure, in the style of a Cervantes 'or Nabokovs .
ellauri106.html on line 97: In 2000 Saul Bellow proposed Philip Roth to the Swedish Academy for the Nobel Prize for Literature. The accusation that the academy deliberately overlooks Roth's achievements in selecting the Nobel Prize winner each year has been one of the truisms of international feuilletons since the 2000s. According to some critics, the accusation turned out to be justified in 2008, when the chairman of the jury responsible for the Nobel Prize for Literature made public general reservations about North American literature and denied it deserving of an award. Ulrich Greiner summed up Roth's rejection by the Nobel Prize Committee as follows: “The Swedes, however, love authors who help to improve the world. Philip Roth only adds something to their knowledge about what needs work."
ellauri106.html on line 104: He enjoyed a robust childhood and was poplar in high school where he was a bright student but not quite diligent enough in his studies to win a prized full scholarship to Rutgers where he wanted to study law. Roth attended Rutgers University in Newark for a year, then transferred to Bucknell University in Pennsylvania, where he earned a B.A. magna cum laude in English and was elected to Phi Beta Kappa. He received a scholarship to attend the University of Chicago, where he earned an M.A. in English literature in 1955 and briefly worked as an instructor in the university´s writing program. Less prestigious Bucknell University in Pennsylvania was Roth’s fallback school. There he abandoned his vague dreams of becoming a lawyer for the underdog and turned his attention to writing.
ellauri106.html on line 110: Sitä ei oppilaiden sopinut sinutella: teille olen Mr. Roth. Tai ehkä jopa Professor Roth. Vitun maisteri. Phillun olympolla rehvasteli Ari, Hobbes, Mill, Gibbon, Pater, Shaw, Swift, Sir Thomas Browne etc. Muut on tuttuja mutta kekäs tää Browne on?
ellauri106.html on line 134: Phillu rakastui äitiinsä jo kouluiässä, se näytti siitä Mrs. Chiang kai-shekiltä, tarkoitaen siis Soong Mei-lingiä (alla). Sen omat vaimot oli kaikki Mrs. Philip Rotheja, paizi milloin unohtivat kävelypuvun ja lähtivät ilman lupaa sooloilemaan. Siinä vaiheessa Phillu karisti ne äkäseen. 1947 pikku turbojalka oli mustasukkainen Sandy-veljelle intissä, kun äiti itkeskeli sitä eikä turboa kun Frank Sinatra veisasi Mamselleä (alla). Sandy/Sherman oli muusikko ja klovni joka matki mainiosti Luther "Bojangles" Robinsonia, tapdancing ihmettä joka pääsi esiintymään eka kerran soolona, ilman valkoista esiliinaa Shirley Templen leffasssa. Muut mustat sanoi sitä setä Tomixi. Se kuoli pennittömänä ja sen hautajaiset maxoi Ed Sullivan. (Kekähän sekin oli, täytyy joskus kazoa.) Oli Lvovin juutalaiset meinootten aika hyvin integroituneet jenkkimeininkiin. Bojangles tarkoittaa riitapukari. Oikea Sandy oli piirtäjä ja mainosmies.
ellauri106.html on line 177: Roth was far more prolific than either of the novelists he was frequently lumped with—29 full length novels and a dazzling debut novella over nearly 50 years. His output was also more diverse in style and topic than either of the other while reaping critical praise, armloads of awards, and commercial success. Yet at the core of his varied output were common threads—a Jewish identity with which he was not always comfortable but could not deny, a sense of being profoundly American— “if I am not American what am I”—a, a sex drive that was often creepily compulsive, and the world observed by fictional doppelgangers for the author, or sometimes the author himself as a fictional character.
ellauri106.html on line 179: Today the lengthy obituaries are all laudatory. Tomorrow or the next day I can safely predict that the backlash will begin with harshly critical essays. Leading the way will be Feminists critics who will denounce the whole cabal of elite white men as the custodians of the literary cannon. More pointedly they will charge Roth with toxic masculinity and misogyny and will come loaded for bear with plenty of quotes from his work. They will also have the example and testimony of his two ex-wives, both of whom showed up thinly disguised in his novels—a Margaret Martinson in When She Was Good and actress Clare Bloom in I Married a Communist. Bloom penned her own bitter exposé of their 14-year-long relationship and four year marriage in he memoir Leaving the Doll’s House.
ellauri106.html on line 195: Thomas Wolfe (1900–1938) was born in Asheville, North Carolina, and educated at the University of North Carolina and Harvard University. He taught English at New York University and traveled extensively in Europe and America. Wolfe created his legacy as a classic American novelist with Look Homeward, Angel; Of Time and the River; A Stone, a Leaf, a Door; and From Death to Morning. Wolfe's influence extends to the writings of Beat Generation writer Jack Kerouac, and of authors Ray Bradbury and Philip Roth, among others. He remains an important writer in modern American literature, as one of the first masters of autobiographical fiction, and is considered North Carolina's most famous writer. Ei mitään pientä.
ellauri106.html on line 236: My Life as a Man is not nearly so consistently enjoyable as Portnoy's Complaint, but it is the product of a more painful period in the author's life. In his autobiography, Roth reveals that much of Tarnopol´s life is based on his own experiences; for example, Roth´s destructive marriage to Margaret Martinson, which is portrayed through Tarnopol´s relationship with the character of Maureen.
ellauri106.html on line 243: The women in the writer´s life provided inspiration for characters in his novels both positive and negative. PHILIP Roth was famed for his observations on life - some of which he gathered from his own relationships with his ex-wives.
ellauri106.html on line 333: He began at an early age to help his father with typesetting and printing work, a job known at the time as a printer´s devil.
ellauri106.html on line 350: The group took its name from Bob Dylan´s lyric, "You don´t need a weatherman to know which way the wind blows". (Another jew. )
ellauri106.html on line 359: Jamil Abdullah Al-Amin (born Hubert Gerold Brown; October 4, 1943), formerly known as H. Rap Brown, is a civil rights activist who was the fifth chairman of the Student Nonviolent Coordinating Committee in the 1960s. During a short-lived (six months) alliance between SNCC and the Black Panther Party, he served as their minister of justice.
ellauri106.html on line 361: He is perhaps known for his proclamations during that period that "violence is as American as cherry pie" and that "If America don´t come around, we´re gonna burn it down." He is also known for his autobiography, Die Nigger Die! He is currently serving a life sentence for murder following the shooting of two Fulton County Sheriff´s deputies in 2000.
ellauri106.html on line 365: Brown is now known to have no direct relationship with the alleged riot of 1967. The head of the Cambridge police department, Brice Kinnamon, nonetheless claimed that the city had no racial problems, Brown was the "sole" cause of the disorder, and it was "a well-planned Communist attempt to overthrow the government."
ellauri106.html on line 403: Religion was a lie that he had recognized early in life, and he found all religions offensive, considered their superstitious folderol meaningless, childish, couldn´t stand the complete unadultness — the baby talk and the righteousness and the sheep, the avid believers. No hocus-pocus about death and God or obsolete fantasies of heaven for him. There was only our bodies, born to live and die on terms decided by the bodies that had lived and died before us. If he could be said to have located a philosophical niche for himself that was it - he'd come upon it early and intuitively, and however elemental, that was the whole of it. Should he ever write an autobiography, he'd call it The Life and Death of a Male Body.
ellauri106.html on line 405: Phil´s childhood love of baseball offered him “membership in a great secular nationalistic church from which nobody had ever seemed to suggest that Jews should be excluded.” Babe Ruth, whose real name was George Herman Ruth, Jr., was born and raised in Baltimore, Maryland. He died of pneumonia and complications from throat cancer in New York City in 1948.
ellauri106.html on line 409: Ruth has spoken about his childhood and his faith. He had a conversion of sorts. As a youngster, he was a delinquent–chewing tobacco and drinking and swearing. He says he had no faith in God before he was sent to the Catholic school and that the biggest lesson he got from the experience there was learning that “God was Boss.”
ellauri106.html on line 425: As well as the social cohesion that spirituality and early religious beliefs must have brought to threatened groups of humans, they must also have been a valuable mechanism to persuade humans to struggle against the odds. Surely, human spirituality is deeply embedded in our genes. Victor Frankl, in his observations about survival in Auschwitz, argued that in his view, only those inmates who had some spiritual sense, some idea that there was a power above that could see their suffering, found the strength and resolution to survive the terrible dehumanisation and deprivation of the concentration camps.
ellauri106.html on line 444: Arjalaisen näköinen apostata kärsii kun sen tytär vie pommin postitoimistoon. Näin ei olisi käynyt jos se olisi saanut hasidikasvatuxen, hasidimiehen ja peruukin! Modernismi koitti nostaa apinan jumalansa oxalle, postmodernismi sahaa poikki koko oxaa. Joku shixa meinaa että Phillun pastoraali on iso läppä, mutta Lilith on varma että siinä on jotain enemmänkin. Tän ruozalaisen näköisen jutkuluopion kärsimyxet on kuin Jobilla, eli teodikeasta tässäkin on kymysys. Senkö tautta Phil oli niin kärmistynyt kun ei tullut sitä Noobelia, Sale kehno vei sen Philin nenän edestä vaikka Phil ehti kirjoittaa paljon enämpi kirjoja? Siinä on miettimistä, johtuuko se kaaoxesta vaiko siitä että Philillä on enemmän syntejä tunnollaan kuin Salella. (Sale kyllä oli täysin tunnoton.)
ellauri106.html on line 450: During what Henry Luce deemed the American century—the century during which America rises to a position of dominance on the globe—the Americanethos paradoxically plummets, in large part due to the Vietnam War and the Watergate scandal, politically charged events to which Roth pays particular attention in the novel because he sees them as formative of the 1990s moment at which he writes.
ellauri106.html on line 472: “From enfant terrible to elder statesman. Time heals all wounds,” Rabbi David Wolpe of Sinai Temple in Los Angeles remarked to JTA via email. No hocus pocus about death and God or obsolete fantasies of heaven for him. There was only our bodies, born to live and die on terms decided by the bodies that had lived and died before us. If he could be said to have located a philosophical niche for himself, that was it — he’d come upon it early and intuitively, and however elemental, that was the whole of it. Should he ever write an autobiography, he’d call it ‘The Life and Death of the Male Body.’ Well actually he called it "My life as a man".
ellauri106.html on line 494: Mikäs on Rothin poliittinen näkemys? Joku nettikriitikko lataa osuvahkosti ettei sillä ole sellasta, se on vaan vanhan koulun antikommunistijulkero. Roth imee omaa häntäänsä eli Zuckermannin makeampaa päätä narratologisena ouroboroxena.
ellauri106.html on line 495: Ouroboros on ikivanha symboli, jossa käärme tai lohikäärme syö omaa häntäänsä. Ouroboros on keskeinen uskonnollisessa ja mytologisessa symboliikassa.
ellauri106.html on line 535: America’s self-constructed binary opposition to the Soviet Union, whose “Godless totalitarianism” was the only remaining threat to the global propagation of America’s core values of "Godful utilitarianism."
ellauri106.html on line 548: The fundamental problem of history for those on the far left is, of course, its failure to unravel as Marx had predicted it would. The Great Depression did not incite proletarian revolution; the Soviet experiment did not result in a model of Socialist Utopia; America’s social, political, and economic structures did not collapse under the weight of late capitalism. Far from it, in fact.
ellauri106.html on line 556: Before his death from congestive heart failure on Tuesday, he made no secret of his contempt for Donald Trump, was instinctively liberal in most respects, and thought of himself as a Roosevelt Democrat. Yet his political novels have a nagging MAGA aftertaste. Successful, decent, hardworking men, who in the time of our fathers would have been appreciated, are mindlessly destroyed by modern women as the embodiments of a degenerate society. Roth’s desire, ultimately, is the same as Reagan’s: an impossible return to the promised land of modernization. Not by coincidence, the final chapter of The Human Stain is titled, “The Purifying Ritual.” Puhdistuxesta kuumuu kaikki anaalis-obsessiiviset henkilöt Hitleristä Rothiin ja Sofi Oxaseen. Puhamaan! Äiitii mä oon vallmiiis! Tuu PYYHKIMÄÄN!
ellauri106.html on line 590: Phillu häpesi vanhempiaan jotka käveli ghettoon sateessa ja toi mummeilta pahoja mamuruokia. Kålpirog i kruka ja kenkälaatikossa omenatorttua. NOLOA. Samoja luokkanousijan huonoja fiilixiä kuin Ferranten kirjassa. Meillä ei tarvinnut niitä olla, isovanhemmatkin oli herrasväkeä. Laskukkaita ollaan, dändyjä eikä niinkuin Phillu snobeja.
ellauri106.html on line 599: Phillu myöntää izekin että Lydian ja Naatanin tarina kuulostaa kexityltä. Mixi niin upea jutku nuorimies tuhoaisi elämänsä tollasen shixan jalkovälissä, josta se ei edes pidä? No se ei viizi mainita hyviä hetkiä, joissa jutkujolppi sai vapaasti keekoilla, keikailla ja kukkoilla blondille shixalle, joka palvoi jokaista sen huulilta vuotavaa sanallista hunajan pisaraa. Niitä hetkiä ei maxa vaivaa mainita, koska niillä ei ole moraalista sisältöä. Mitä VITUN moraalista sisältöä? Ai koska niillä oli tollasta vaan tavista kivaa yhdessä? Sellaista ei lasketa, koska se ei vie wannabe snobia hitustakaan eteenpäin, kuten Lea tapasi sanoa. Egoistille moraali on yhden hengen peliä, pyrkyryyteen tarvittavaa Roope Ankkamaista uutteruutta pihiyttä ja izekuria.
ellauri106.html on line 605: – Vi har jobbat med Trafikverket kring detta i 20 år, men det händer ju inget, säger ornitologen PO Nilsson.
ellauri106.html on line 621: Mailer was hugely popular at his peak, but now he’s probably best known for that whole stabbing-his-second-wife awkwardness; Updike is regularly derided as “a misogynist”; and Bellow’s female characters are often, at best, thinly drawn, or full-on bitches and shrews. Now, inevitably, it’s Roth’s turn. Roth’s women were either “vicious and alluring” or “virtuous and boring”.
ellauri106.html on line 631: No one can accuse Roth of ever hiding who he was: American, Jewish, obsessed with sex, obsessed with death, funny, angry, wise, profane, imaginative, cruel. That is what cruel readers always liked about him.
ellauri106.html on line 651: Kaikkein traagisinta on että Phillu ja Gilmoren tytöt, siis etenkin ne äiskät, on ihan samanlaisia, aivan vitun ahdasmielisiä izekkäitä anaalis-obsessiivisia luokkatietoisia patriarkaalisia jurboja. Vizit ei muuta asiaa yhtään mixikään. Et voi istua täällä sisällä tuo hattu päässä! Minä olen sinun äitisi ja käsken sinua ottamaan sen pois! Monica minä rakastan sinua ja sinä rakastat minua, viimeisen kerran ota se hattu pois ennenkuin minä revin sen sinun päästäsi! Tee niinkuin minä käsken! Laita jalkasi yhteen! Ne ovat auki ja näytät alushoususi! Phillu tuijottaa kuolaten sun pillua!
ellauri107.html on line 93: They face obstacles from Brenda's family (particularly her mother), due to differences in class and assimilation into the American mainstream. Brenda's family are nouveau riche, their money coming from the successful plumbing supply business owned and run by her father. Brenda herself is old enough to remember "being poor". Other conflicts include propriety and issues related to premarital sex and the possibility of pregnancy and Mrs. Patimkin's envy of her daughter's youth.
ellauri107.html on line 114: Rojack vomits over the balcony at a party and considers suicide. Rojack has sex with Ruta in her room. Later Rojack sees Cherry again. He is drawn to her. She and Rojack flirt and kiss. They have sex, and after emptying the load Rojack realizes he has fallen in love with her. Rojack goes back to Cherry and they make love. Cherry tells her life story viz her finally having a vaginal orgasm with Rojack. Rojack and nigger Shago fight. He returns to Cherry's only to find out from Roberts she has been killed. No more vaginal orgasms from her. Rojack travels to Las Vegas where he wins big at the tables, paying off all his debts. He imagines speaking with Cherry in Heaven before he heads south to Guatemala and the Yucatán. Y asi finaliza esta historia.
ellauri107.html on line 124: Mailer attempted to use existentialism to excuse Rojack's misogynistic exploration as his "sexistentialist project". Rojack's victims are women and a black man, appropriate objects of the white male's "dominant wrath".
ellauri107.html on line 131: Peppu seuraa jo tuiki tuttuja lainalaisuuxia: koska se on egoistinarsisti, se on myös oikeistolainen talousliberaali ja vanhetessaan muuttuu yhä konservatiivisemmaxi. Trumppia se ei sietänyt vaikka se on yhtä ilkeä ja yhtä nousukas, koska se on rikkaampi ja kuuluisampi eikä riittävästi snobi. Sehän on vaan raamatulla vinkkaava saxalainen protestanttigrynderi. Filistealaisten maat katoaa GT-sählämien sandaalien alle kuin Helsingin valtaamat Sipoon luontoalueet Velmu Viurusilmän grynderien kartalta.
ellauri107.html on line 179: The zenith of [Hawthorne and Melville’s] relationship was reached . . . when Moby-Dick was published in middle November of 1851 and was dedicated to Hawthorne [“To Nathaniel Hawthorne: In token of my admiration for his genius”]. Hawthorne’s letter to Melville [at the time], like most of those to his friend, has not been preserved, but Melville’s answer on November 17 . . . speaks of the effect Hawthorne’s letter had upon him, in terms characteristic of his impassioned utterances:
ellauri107.html on line 183: As [Arlin]Turner says in analyzing this letter, “[Melville] was aware, it can be assumed, of the inclusiveness and interwoven imagery of his letter, and no less aware of the meaning behind the imagery. The same awareness can be assumed on the part of Hawthorne”. Edwin Haviland Miller, who interprets Melville’s affection for Hawthorne as in part sexual, says that in this passage, “the most ardent and doubtlessly one of the most painful he was ever to write, he candidly and boldly laid bare his love”. Miller goes on to say that “when Hawthorne retreated from Lenox, he retreated from Melville. How Hawthorne felt his reticences keep us from knowing, but his friend wrestled with the problems and nature of the relationship almost until the end of his life”. Turner says only that “there is evidence through the remaining forty years of Melville’s life that he thought he had been rebuffed by Hawthorne, and that he felt a genuine regret for his loss.”
ellauri107.html on line 191: . . . Hawthorne liked [Melville’s novel Typee], observing [in 1846] that . . . Melville has “that freedom of view—it would be too harsh to call it laxity of principle—which renders him tolerant of codes of morals that may be little in accordance with our own; a spirit proper enough to a young and adventurous sailor . . .”
ellauri107.html on line 195: In the following excerpts from Hawthorne's The Blithedale Romance, the Hawthorne-like character, poet and narrator Miles Coverdale, and the Melville-like character, passionate monomaniac Hollingsworth suggest Melville's influence on the novel. The first person narrator, a young man who joins a major enterprise with mostly adventure-seeking motives, certainly calls to mind narrator Ishmael in Melville's Moby-Dick. The dark and brawny Hollingsworth, bearing a physical resemblance to Melville, cares for Coverdale and seeks his partnership, moreover, in an intensity that seems to parallel Melville's evident affection for and desire for intimacy with Hawthorne. The sharp, mysterious break in the relationships between the two authors and the fictional pair constitute yet another likeness.
ellauri107.html on line 204: Coverdale notes that "there was something of the woman moulded into the great, stalwart frame of Hollingsworth; nor was he ashamed of it, as men often are of what is best in them, nor seemed ever to know that there was such a soft place in his heart. . . . I besought Hollingsworth to let nobody else enter the room, but continually to make me sensible of his own presence by a grasp of the hand, a word, -- a prayer, if he thought good to utter it . . . ."
ellauri107.html on line 212: Coverdale concludes the tale of Zenobia's hopeless love for Hollingsworth and enigmatically adds, "It suits me not to explain what was the analogy that I saw, or imagined, between Zenobia's situation and mine; nor, I believe, will the reader detect this one secret, hidden beneath many a revelation which perhaps concerned me less."
ellauri107.html on line 214: Actually, the reader would have to be remarkably obtuse not to recognize the sexual tension between Coverdale and Hollingsworth. If only we could know what Melville thought when he read it! Certainly, Melville was aware that Brook Farm in Roxbury, Massachusetts, which Blithedale represents, had enjoyed the company of Hawthorne as a communal society member for most of 1841. Perhaps he also knew that substantial portions of Coverdale’s first person narration are taken directly from Hawthorne’s Brook Farm journals, and he would certainly know better than we the extent to which the novel may also represent allusions to Hawthorne’s and his experiences together during the year before the publication of Blithedale.
ellauri107.html on line 216: Let me return briefly to Dr. Kesterson for his observation of the circumstances surrounding the creation of Moby-Dick. He notes . . . (Creation of Moby DICK! A dead giveaway! Tästä on jo ollut puhetta.)
ellauri107.html on line 218: The major occurrence in Melville’s life . . . during the writing of Moby-Dick was the growing friendship with Nathaniel Hawthorne . . . . We are reminded that throughout the fall and winter of 1850, and summer of 1851, Hawthorne and Melville were visiting and writing to each other. . Hawthorne encapsulating their conversation [of August 1, 1851] by writing in his journal: “Melville and I had a talk about time and eternity, things of this world and of the next, and books, and publishers, and all possible and impossible matters, that lasted pretty deep into the night . . . .”
ellauri107.html on line 238: Same sex relationships in the all male environment of Billy Budd’s British as well as Herman Melville’s American ships are understood. As former First Lord of the Admiralty, British Prime Minister Winston Churchill once witheringly quipped, British naval tradition might well be equated with sodomy. Although Billy Budd lacks the “marriage” rites of Moby-Dick’s Ishmael and Queequeg, itcontains endearments for “Handsome Sailor” Billy that leave little doubt as to many of his mates’ ardent feelings toward him. The old Dansker on the British warship originates “Baby Budd,” also shortened to “Baby,” in reference to Billy, “the name by which the foretopman eventually became known aboard ship.” Readers also hear “one Donald” addressing Billy as “Beauty.”
ellauri107.html on line 242: In surveying Billy, “sometimes [Claggart’s] melancholy expression would have in it a touch of soft yearning, as if [he] could even have loved Billy but for fate and ban.” Evidently, Claggart has not fully disguised his private appreciation of Billy; but, because he believes something forbids any future for such feelings, he hardens his heart more and more fiercely toward the object of his desire. What “fate” and what “ban” does his misguided imagination perceive? Do their roles on the ship or elsewhere in society somehow doom any intimacy between them? Or does Claggart just presume Billy could never reciprocate his feelings? Might the Master at Arms simply despise sexuality in general and homosexuality in particular and, as a result, find himself driven all the more mad by his uncontrollable “yearning”? Whatever the accurate diagnosis, it is clear that Claggart distorts any positive feelings he possesses for Billy into negative ones with terrible consequences.
ellauri107.html on line 260: Speculation about Cohn's sexuality intensified following his death from AIDS in 1986. In a 2008 article published in The New Yorker, Jeffrey Toobin quotes Roger Stone: "Roy was not gay. He was a man who liked having sex with men. Gays were weak, effeminate. He always seemed to have these young blond boys around. It just wasn't discussed. He was interested in power and access." Stone worked with Cohn beginning with the Reagan campaign during the 1976 Republican Party presidential primaries.
ellauri107.html on line 270: Taylor also recounts some of Roth's health struggles. Among other things, he suffered from back and heart problems. Taylor recalls one particular trip to the hospital with Roth where they jumped into a cab. The aggressively flatulent driver had Rush Limbaugh on at top volume. Roth, in pain, turned to Taylor and asked, are we to be spared nothing?
ellauri107.html on line 274: He was infamously resentful of being denied the Nobel Prize in literature: “He took to calling it the Anybody-But-Roth Prize,” Taylor reports. And past slights consumed him. Taylor notes that Roth couldn’t stop relitigating his first marriage, and that “despite her death she needed further – no, endless – pulverization.”
ellauri107.html on line 335: Roth sai uransa varrella kuulla syytteitä jopa naisvihasta. Hän itse totesi, että kaikki hänen naishahmonsa ovat yksilöitä vaikka ilkeitä, eikä hän leimaa koko naissukupuolta saman otsikon alle, vaan kahden. Ainakin feministien mielestä Rothin naishahmot ovat joko juutalaisia perheenäitejä tai ei-juutalaisia (shiksa) seksuaaliobjekteja. Pettymys avioliitoissa oli joka tapauksessa yksi syy Rothin lopultakin aika mustavalkoiseen naiskuvaan. Vaimojen mieskuva oli kyllä kokomusta.
ellauri107.html on line 402: In crisis over whether he’s a man or nuts. I'd say nuts. He is a sexual extremist and erotomaniac, a sociopath and wannabe paedophile, rummaging in the knicker drawer of his best friend’s teenage daughter. A habitual liar, a graveyard onanist, a childless despiser of families and couples; a joyous micturator over all laughter, hope, goodness and wholesomeness (a peculiarly American obsession: see also David Lynch), Sabbath entertains us with his negativity.
ellauri107.html on line 410: Hobitit ja muut babitit
ellauri107.html on line 414: Babbitt (1922), by Sinclair Lewis, is a satirical novel about American culture and society that critiques the vacuity of middle class life and the social pressure toward conformity. The controversy provoked by Babbitt was influential in the decision to award the Nobel Prize in Literature to Lewis in 1930.
ellauri107.html on line 422: George F. Babbitt was an archetype of the American city dwellers who touted the virtues of Republicanism, Presbyterianism, and absolute conformity because "it is not what he feels and aspires that moves him primarily; it is what the folks about him will think of him. His politics is communal politics, mob politics, herd politics; his religion is a public rite wholly without subjective significance." Mencken said that Babbitt was the literary embodiment of everything wrong with American society.
ellauri107.html on line 427: 1937 English author J.R.R. Tolkien published The Hobbit; the title and the originally somewhat complacent and bourgeois character of Bilbo and hobbits in general were influenced by Babbitt.
ellauri107.html on line 429: Groucho Malamud, Chico Bellow ja Harpo Roth olivat kuin Sam Gamgee, Frodo ja Bilbo Baggins, karvavarpaisia babitteja, alamittaisia homunculuxia. Keskiluokan hirviöitä. "Missä kirjoituskone on?" Hupaisaa että Tolkien-leffoissa poroporvarillisista hobiteista on tullut kansalaiskuntoisia rotariveljiä.
ellauri107.html on line 439: “Now you look here! The first thing you got to understand is that all this uplift and flipflop and settlement-work and recreation is nothing in God's world but the entering wedge for socialism. The sooner a man learns he isn't going to be coddled, and he needn't expect a lot of free grub and, uh, all these free classes and flipflop and doodads for his kids unless he earns 'em, why, the sooner he'll get on the job and produce—produce—produce! That's what the country needs, and not all this fancy stuff that just enfeebles the will-power of the working man and gives his kids a lot of notions above their class. And you—if you'd tend to business instead of fooling and fussing—All the time! When I was a young man I made up my mind what I wanted to do, and stuck to it through thick and thin, and that's why I'm where I am to-day, and—Myra! What do you let the girl chop the toast up into these dinky little chunks for? Can't get your fist onto 'em. Half cold, anyway!”
ellauri107.html on line 473: But Babbitt was virtuous. He advocated, though he did not practise, the prohibition of alcohol; he praised, though he did not obey, the laws against motor-speeding; he paid his debts; he contributed to the church, the Red Cross, and the Y. M. C. A.; he followed the custom of his clan and cheated only as it was sanctified by precedent; and he never descended to trickery—though, as he explained to Paul Riesling:
ellauri107.html on line 477: The Athletic Club building is nine stories high, yellow brick with glassy roof-garden above and portico of huge limestone columns below. The lobby, with its thick pillars of porous Caen stone, its pointed vaulting, and a brown glazed-tile floor like well-baked bread-crust, is a combination of cathedral-crypt and rathskeller. The members rush into the lobby as though they were shopping and hadn't much time for it. Thus did Babbitt enter, and to the group standing by the cigar-counter he whooped, “How's the boys? How's the boys? Well, well, fine day!”
ellauri107.html on line 487: They grinned and went into the Neronian washroom, where a line of men bent over the bowls inset along a prodigious slab of marble as in religious prostration before their own images in the massy mirror. Voices thick, satisfied, authoritative, hurtled along the marble walls, bounded from the ceiling of lavender-bordered milky tiles, while the lords of the city, the barons of insurance and law and fertilizers and motor tires, laid down the law for Zenith; announced that the day was warm-indeed, indisputably of spring; that wages were too high and the interest on mortgages too low; that Babe Ruth, the eminent player of baseball, was a noble man; and that “those two nuts at the Climax Vaudeville Theater this week certainly are a slick pair of actors.”
ellauri107.html on line 562: Phillun kertomus ekan vaimon abortista olis hirvittävää kuultavaa sen lukemana äänikirjana. Kamala se on muutenkin. En usko sen seliselistä sanaakaan. Kylmä hirviö, hirvee kylmiö. Callekin puhui mielellään moraalista izekurista ja periaatteista. Ne on anaalis-obsessiivisten apinoiden mielisanoja, sellaisten joiden kurenauha peräaukossa on liian tiukalla.
ellauri108.html on line 38: Käsitteiden "ikävä mulkero", "kusitolppa" ja "paskiainen" extensioiden objektiivisesta yhtäpitävyydestä todistaa mm. se, että paskiaiset puolustelee ikäviä mulkeroita ja kusitolppia sekä kääntäen. Esim. pikku piipunrassi Grels Teir osoittaa "ymmärtämystä" Ruozin Mengelelle Anders Tegnellille. Sale Bellow kiittelee Philip Rothia ja kääntäen. Öykkärimäinen Trump ja luihu Boris ovat samixia frisyyriä myöten. Etc. etc.
ellauri108.html on line 44: Juu esses aar romahti globaalin kapitalismin taloudellisessa painostuxessa 80-luvun lopussa. Onkohan juu es of ei menossa samaa tietä vastaavista syistä? Siellä alkaa olla aivan vitusti mamuporukoita jotka on aika tyytymättömiä, kun Amerikan unelmahissi ei enää nouse kerroxiin. Ne rabotajet, lukee hissin päälle liimatussa lapussa.
ellauri108.html on line 115: Rastafari teaches that the black African diaspora are exiles living in "Babylon", a term which it applies to Western society. For Rastas, European colonialism and global capitalism are regarded as manifestations of Babylon, while police and soldiers are viewed as its agents. The term "Babylon" is adopted because of its Biblical associations. In the Old Testament, Babylon is the Mesopotamian city where the Israelites were held captive, exiled from their homeland, between 597 and 586 BCE; Rastas compare the exile of the Israelites in Mesopotamia to the exile of the African diaspora outside Africa. In the New Testament, "Babylon" is used as a euphemism for the Roman Empire, which was regarded as acting in a destructive manner that was akin to the way in which the ancient Babylonians acted. Rastas perceive the exile of the black African diaspora in Babylon as an experience of great suffering, with the term "suffering" having a significant place in Rasta discourse.
ellauri108.html on line 121: In portraying Africa as their "Promised Land", Rastas reflect their desire to escape what they perceive as the domination and degradation that they experience in Babylon. During the first three decades of the Rastafari movement, it placed strong emphasis on the need for the African diaspora to be repatriated to Africa. To this end, various Rastas lobbied the Jamaican government and United Nations to oversee this resettlement process. Other Rastas organised their own transportation to the African continent. Critics of the movement have argued that the migration of the entire African diaspora to Africa is implausible, particularly as no African country would welcome this.
ellauri108.html on line 123: By the movement's fourth decade, the desire for physical repatriation to Africa had declined among Rastas, a change influenced by observation of the 1983–1985 famine in Ethiopia. Rather, many Rastas saw the idea of returning to Africa in a metaphorical sense, entailing the restoration of their pride and self-confidence as people of black African descent. The term "liberation before repatriation" began to be used within the movement. Some Rastas seek to transform Western society so that they may more comfortably live within it rather than seeking to move to Africa. There are nevertheless many Rastas who continue to emphasise the need for physical resettlement of the African diaspora in Africa.
ellauri108.html on line 127: Rastas do not believe that there is a specific afterlife to which individuals go following bodily death. They believe in the possibility of eternal life, and that only those who shun righteousness will actually die. The scholar of religion Leonard E. Barrett observed some Jamaican Rastas who believed that those practitioners who did die had not been faithful to Jah. He suggested that this attitude stemmed from the large numbers of young people that were then members of the movement, and who had thus seen only few Rastas die. Another Rasta view is that those who are righteous will undergo reincarnation, with an individual's identity remaining throughout each of their incarnations. In keeping with their views on death, Rastas eschew celebrating physical death and often avoid funerals, also repudiating the practice of ancestor veneration that is common among traditional African religions.
ellauri108.html on line 135: Rastafari promotes what it regards as the restoration of black manhood, believing that men in the African diaspora have been emasculated by Babylon. It espouses patriarchal principles, including the idea that women should submit to male leadership. External observers—including scholars such as Cashmore and Edmonds—have claimed that Rastafari accords women an inferior position to men. Rastafari women usually accept this subordinate position and regard it as their duty to obey their men; the academic Maureen Rowe suggested that women were willing to join the religion despite its restrictions because they valued the life of structure and discipline it provided. Rasta discourse often presents women as morally weak and susceptible to deception by evil, and claims that they are impure while menstruating. Rastas legitimise these gender roles by citing Biblical passages, particularly those in the Book of Leviticus and in the writings of Paul the Apostle. The Rasta Shop is a store selling items associated with Rastafari in the U.S. state of Oregon.
ellauri108.html on line 137: Rasta women usually wear clothing that covers their head and hides their body contours. Trousers are usually avoided, in favour of long skirts. Women are expected to cover their head while praying, and in some Rasta groups this is expected of them whenever in public. Rasta discourse insists this female dress code is necessary to prevent women attracting men and presents it as an antidote to the sexual objectification of women in Babylon. Rasta men are permitted to wear whatever they choose. Although men and women took part alongside each other in early Rasta rituals, from the late 1940s and 1950s the Rasta community increasingly encouraged gender segregation for ceremonies. This was legitimised with the explanation that women were impure through menstruation and that their presence at the ceremonies would distract male participants.
ellauri108.html on line 141: Rastafari regards procreation as the purpose of sex, and thus oral and anal sex are usually forbidden. Both contraception and abortion are usually censured, and a common claim in Rasta discourse is that these were inventions of Babylon to decrease the black African birth-rate. Rastas typically express hostile attitudes to homosexuality, regarding homosexuals as evil and unnatural; this attitude derives from references to same-sex sexual activity in the Bible. Homosexual Rastas probably conceal their sexual orientation because of these attitudes. Rastas typically see the growing acceptance of birth control and homosexuality in Western society as evidence of the degeneration of Babylon as it approaches its apocalyptic end.
ellauri108.html on line 172: Rastas typically regard words as having an intrinsic power, seeking to avoid language that contributes to servility, self-degradation, and the objectification of the person. Practitioners therefore often use their own form of language, known commonly as "dread talk", "Iyaric", and "Rasta talk". Developed in Jamaica during the 1940s, this use of language fosters group identity and cultivates particular values. Adherents believe that by formulating their own language they are launching an ideological attack on the integrity of the English language, which they view as a tool of Babylon. The use of this language helps Rastas distinguish and separate themselves from non-Rastas, for whom—according to Barrett—Rasta rhetoric can be "meaningless babbling". However, Rasta terms have also filtered into wider Jamaican speech patterns.
ellauri108.html on line 189: Rastas differ on whether they regard dreadlocks as compulsory for practicing the religion. Some Rastas do not wear their hair in dreadlocks; within the religion they are often termed "cleanface" Rastas, with those wearing dreadlocked hair often called "locksmen". Some Rastas have also joined the Ethiopian Orthodox Church, the Christian organisation to which Haile Selassie belonged, and these individuals are forbidden from putting their hair in dreadlocks by the Church. In reference to Rasta hairstyles, Rastas often refer to non-Rastas as "baldheads", or "combsome", while those who are new to Rastafari and who have only just started to grow their hair into dreads are termed "nubbies". Members of the Bobo Ashanti sect of Rastas conceal their dreadlocks within turbans, while some Rastas tuck their dreads under a rastacap or tam headdress, usually coloured green, red, black, and yellow. Dreadlocks and Rastafari-inspired clothing have also been worn for aesthetic reasons by non-Rastas. For instance, many reggae musicians who do not adhere to the Rastafari religion wear their hair in dreads. A Rasta man wearing a rastacap has been sighted in Jamaica.
ellauri108.html on line 201: Marcus Garvey, a prominent black nationalist theorist who heavily influenced Rastafari and is regarded as a prophet by many Rastas. The Jamaican activist Marcus Garvey, spent much of his adult life in the US and Britain. Garvey supported the idea of global racial separatism and called for part of the African diaspora to relocate to Africa. His ideas faced opposition from civil rights activists like W. E. B. Du Bois who supported racial integration, and as a mass movement, Garveyism declined in the Great Depression of the 1930s. A rumour later spread that in 1916, Garvey had called on his supporters to "look to Africa" for the crowning of a black king; this quote was never verified. However, in August 1930, Garvey's play, Coronation of an African King, was performed in Kingston. Its plot revolved around the crowning of the fictional Prince Cudjoe of Sudan, although it anticipated the crowning of Haile Selassie later that year. Rastas hold Garvey in great esteem, with many regarding him as a prophet. Garvey knew of Rastafari, but took a largely negative view of the religion; he also became a critic of Haile Selassie, calling him "a great coward" who rules a "country where black men are chained and flogged".
ellauri108.html on line 203: Haile Selassie was crowned Emperor of Ethiopia in 1930. A number of Jamaica's Christian clergymen claimed that Selassie's coronation was evidence that he was the black messiah that they believed was prophesied in the Book of Revelation, the Book of Daniel, and Psalms. Over the following years, several street preachers—most notably Leonard Howell, Archibald Dunkley, Robert Hinds, and Joseph Hibbert—began claiming that Haile Selassie was the returned Jesus. They first did so in Kingston, and soon the message spread throughout 1930s Jamaica, especially among poor communities who were hit particularly hard by the Great Depression. Clarke stated that "to all intents and purposes this was the beginning" of the Rastafari movement.
ellauri108.html on line 222: In the mid-1970s, reggae's international popularity exploded. The most successful reggae artist was Bob Marley, who—according to Cashmore—"more than any other individual, was responsible for introducing Rastafarian themes, concepts and demands to a truly universal audience". Reggae's popularity led to a growth in "pseudo-Rastafarians", individuals who listened to reggae and wore Rasta clothing but did not share its belief system. Many Rastas were angered by this, believing it commercialised their religion.
ellauri108.html on line 223: Reggae musician Bob Marley did much to raise international awareness of the Rastafari movement in the 1970s.
ellauri108.html on line 225: Mä ehdin pahan kerran kyllästyä Bob Marleyn musiikkiin kun pikku Pauli huusi suu kolmiona ja kieli kuppina kova hattu päässä, ja mä kannoin sitä ympäriinsä pienessä huoneessa Merimiehenkatu 10:ssä, jossa oli stereot ja Lundiat. Pauli kai sit tykkäs siitä musiikista, sitä piti soittaa huutamisen taustabändinä.
ellauri108.html on line 227: Through reggae, Rasta musicians became increasingly important in Jamaica's political life during the 1970s. To bolster his popularity with the electorate, Jamaican Prime Minister Michael Manley employed Rasta imagery and courted and obtained support from Marley and other reggae musicians. Manley described Rastas as a "beautiful and remarkable people" and carried a cane, the "rod of correction", which he claimed was a gift from Haile Selassie. Following Manley's example, Jamaican political parties increasingly employed Rasta language, symbols, and reggae references in their campaigns, while Rasta symbols became increasingly mainstream in Jamaican society. This helped to confer greater legitimacy on Rastafari, with reggae and Rasta imagery being increasingly presented as a core part of Jamaica's cultural heritage for the growing tourist industry. In the 1980s, a Rasta, Barbara Makeda Blake Hannah, became a senator in the Jamaican Parliament.
ellauri108.html on line 233: Rastafari is not a homogeneous movement and has no single administrative structure, nor any single leader. A majority of Rastas avoid centralised and hierarchical structures because they do not want to replicate the structures of Babylon and because their religion's ultra-individualistic ethos places emphasis on inner divinity. The structure of most Rastafari groups is less like that of Christian denominations and is instead akin to the cellular structure of other African diasporic traditions like Haitian Vodou, Cuban Santería, and Jamaica's Revival Zion. Since the 1970s, there have been attempts to unify all Rastas, namely through the establishment of the Rastafari Movement Association, which sought political mobilisation. In 1982, the first international assembly of Rastafari groups took place in Toronto, Canada. This and subsequent international conferences, assemblies, and workshops have helped to cement global networks and cultivate an international community of Rastas.
ellauri108.html on line 235: Sub-divisions of Rastafari are often referred to as "houses" or "mansions", in keeping with a passage from the Gospel of John (14:2): as translated in the King James Bible, Jesus states "In my father's house are many mansions". The three most prominent branches are the House of Nyabinghi, the Bobo Ashanti, and the Twelve Tribes of Israel, although other important groups include the Church of Haile Selassie I, Inc., and the Fulfilled Rastafari. By fragmenting into different houses without any single leader, Rastafari became more resilient amid opposition from Jamaica's government during the early decades of the movement.
ellauri108.html on line 237: Probably the largest Rastafari group, the House of Nyabinghi is an aggregate of more traditional and militant Rastas who seek to retain the movement close to the way in which it existed during the 1940s. They stress the idea that Haile Selassie was Jah and the reincarnation of Jesus. The wearing of dreadlocks is regarded as indispensable and patriarchal gender roles are strongly emphasised, while, according to Cashmore, they are "vehemently anti-white". Nyabinghi Rastas refuse to compromise with Babylon and are often critical of reggae musicians like Marley, whom they regard as having collaborated with the commercial music industry.
ellauri108.html on line 239: The Bobo Ashanti sect was founded in Jamaica by Emanuel Charles Edwards through the establishment of his Ethiopia Africa Black International Congress (EABIC) in 1958. The group established a commune in Bull Bay, where they were led by Edwards until his 1994 death. The group hold to a highly rigid ethos. Edwards advocated the idea of a new trinity, with Haile Selassie as the living God, himself as the Christ, and Garvey as the prophet. Male members are divided into two categories: the "priests" who conduct religious services and the "prophets" who take part in reasoning sessions. It places greater restrictions on women than most other forms of Rastafari; women are regarded as impure because of menstruation and childbirth and so are not permitted to cook for men. The group teaches that black Africans are God's chosen people and are superior to white Europeans, with members often refusing to associate with white people. Bobo Ashanti Rastas are recognisable by their long, flowing robes and turbans.
ellauri108.html on line 272: In the 1960s, a Rasta settlement was established in Shashamane, Ethiopia, on land made available by Haile Selassie's Ethiopian World Federation. The community faced many problems; 500 acres were confiscated by the Marxist government of Mengistu Haile Mariam. There were also conflicts with local Ethiopians, who largely regarded the incoming Rastas, and their Ethiopian-born children, as foreigners. The Shashamane community peaked at a population of 2,000, although subsequently declined to around 200.
ellauri108.html on line 274: By the early 1990s, a Rasta community existed in Nairobi, Kenya, whose approach to the religion was informed both by reggae and by traditional Kikuyu religion. Rastafari groups have also appeared in Zimbabwe, and in South Africa; in 2008, there were at least 12,000 Rastas in the country. At an African Union/Caribbean Diaspora conference in South Africa in 2005, a statement was released characterising Rastafari as a force for integration of Africa and the African diaspora.
ellauri108.html on line 381: I know Jah will provide, Benjy says with certainty. When that truth came I had no money, no job, no food. The child, my child, is crying and crying, my wife can't shut him up. As a matter of fact, she schedaadled. Just vamoosed. I am so vexed I can't pray no more. So I open the door and look to the sea. There I see a boat with three fishermen in it. The men are fishing but there is no space in the boat for another person. Out there on the sea, the waves are tall. Behind that boat, I see someone swimming. A little boy swimming along after the boat. I am wondering why the fishermen don't stop to pick up the boy in such a rough sea. But then I come to an understandingand it is Jah who put this idea into my head. That little boy's job is to dive for the fish traps, bring them up from the bottom. He is diving in that rough, rough sea for fish traps, and raising them up, all heavy with saltwater, all by himself. Just a little boy, too. Maybe ten years old. But so strong. Sometimes the sea cover him. I wouldn't see him or the boat. Then they would bounce him back into the sea.
ellauri108.html on line 412: King Nebuchadnezzar had a huge golden image built as a symbol of his power and glory. He then commanded that his people bow down and worship this image whenever they heard the sound of his musical herald. Those who disobeyed the order would be thrown into an immense, blazing furnace.
ellauri108.html on line 453: Because of what they regard as the corruption of the Bible, Rastas also turn to other sources that they believe shed light on black African history. Common texts used for this purpose include Leonard Howell's 1935 work The Promised Key, Robert Athlyi Rogers' 1924 book Holy Piby, and Fitz Balintine Pettersburg's 1920s work, the Royal Parchment Scroll of Black Supremacy. Many Rastas also treat the Kebra Nagast, a 14th-century Ethiopian text, as a source through which to interpret the Bible.
ellauri108.html on line 467: Rastafari teaches that the black African diaspora are exiles living in "Babylon", a term which it applies to Western society. For Rastas, European colonialism and global capitalism are regarded as manifestations of Babylon, while police and soldiers are viewed as its agents.The term "Babylon" is adopted because of its Biblical associations. In the Old Testament, Babylon is the Mesopotamian city where the Israelites were held captive, exiled from their homeland, between 597 and 586 BCE; Rastas compare the exile of the Israelites in Mesopotamia to the exile of the African diaspora outside Africa. In the New Testament, "Babylon" is used as a euphemism for the Roman Empire, which was regarded as acting in a destructive manner that was akin to the way in which the ancient Babylonians acted. Rastas perceive the exile of the black African diaspora in Babylon as an experience of great suffering, with the term "suffering" having a significant place in Rasta discourse.
ellauri108.html on line 479: During the first three decades of the Rastafari movement, it placed strong emphasis on the need for the African diaspora to be repatriated to Africa. To this end, various Rastas lobbied the Jamaican government and United Nations to oversee this resettlement process. Other Rastas organised their own transportation to the African continent. Critics of the movement have argued that the migration of the entire African diaspora to Africa is implausible, particularly as no African country would welcome this.
ellauri108.html on line 481: By the movement's fourth decade, the desire for physical repatriation to Africa had declined among Rastas, a change influenced by observation of the 1983–1985 famine in Ethiopia. Rather, many Rastas saw the idea of returning to Africa in a metaphorical sense, entailing the restoration of their pride and self-confidence as people of black African descent.
ellauri108.html on line 489: Rastas do not believe that there is a specific afterlife to which individuals go following bodily death. They believe in the possibility of eternal life, and that only those who shun righteousness will actually die. The scholar of religion Leonard E. Barrett observed some Jamaican Rastas who believed that those practitioners who did die had not been faithful to Jah. He suggested that this attitude stemmed from the large numbers of young people that were then members of the movement, and who had thus seen only few Rastas die. Another Rasta view is that those who are righteous will undergo reincarnation, with an individual's identity remaining throughout each of their incarnations. In keeping with their views on death, Rastas eschew celebrating physical death and often avoid funerals, also repudiating the practice of ancestor veneration that is common among traditional African religions.
ellauri108.html on line 491: The scholar Maureen Warner-Lewis observed that Rastafari combined a "radical, even revolutionary" stance on socio-political issues, particularly regarding race, with a "profoundly traditional" approach to "philosophical conservatism" on other religious issues. Rastas typically look critically upon modern capitalism with its consumerism and materialism. They favour small-scale, pre-industrial and agricultural societies. Not just sinners but bad businessmen.
ellauri109.html on line 51: Ìst es heiss da unten auch? Hier oben wird's allmählich unbequem.
ellauri109.html on line 111: Sobald wir alle unsere Arbeiten auf dieser Erde erledigt haben,
ellauri109.html on line 170: Antoine ist sehr populär auf Grabsteinen. Er schämt sich nicht, oberflächlich und naiv zu sein.
ellauri109.html on line 274: Shortly after the September 11 attacks, Searle wrote an article arguing that the attacks were a particular event in a long-term struggle against forces that are intractably opposed to the United States, and signaled support for a more aggressive neoconservative interventionist foreign policy. He called for the realization that the United States is in a more-or-less permanent state of war with these forces. Moreover, a probable course of action would be to deny terrorists the use of foreign territory from which to stage their attacks. Finally, he alluded to the long-term nature of the conflict and blamed the attacks on the lack of American resolve to deal forcefully with America's enemies over the past several decades.
ellauri109.html on line 321: The merchant Hans Kohlhase lived in Cölln on the Spree (now incorporated into Berlin) in the Margraviate of Brandenburg in the 16th century. In October 1532 he set out on a trip to the Leipzig Trade Fair in the neighboring Electorate of Saxony. On the way two of his horses were seized, at the command of the Junker von Zaschwitz, as a supposed fee for passage through Saxony. Kohlhase sought redress in the Saxon courts but failed to obtain it. Outraged, he issued a public challenge in 1534 and burned down houses in Wittenberg. Even a letter of admonition from Martin Luther could not dissuade him, and Kohlhase and the band he collected committed further acts of terror. In 1540 he was finally captured and tried, and was publicly broken on the wheel in Berlin on 22 March 1540. From this history Kleist fashioned a novella that dramatized a personal quest for justice in defiance of the claims of the general law and the community.
ellauri109.html on line 416: À partir de 1870, Flaubert est confronté à de nombreux malheurs : sa mère meurt ainsi que Louise Colet et George Sand. Il est également confronté à des problèmes financiers et à des échecs littéraires. Il se met à écrire un roman satirique, « Bouvard et Pécuchet » qui sera publié inachevé en 1881.
ellauri109.html on line 436: Lui est un roman plutôt autobiographique écrit par Louise Colet (1810-1879), un écrivain parisien. Il s'agit de décrire sa relation avec Alfred de Musset, qui la poursuivit de ses assiduités, tout pendant qu'elle conservait une relation distante et épistolaire avec Gustave Flaubert. C'est l'occasion aussi de revenir sur les amours tourmentées de Sand et de Musset, en particulier les épisodes à Fontainebleau et en Italie, déjà largement évoqués dans trois autres romans, La Confession d'un enfant du siècle de Musset, Elle et Lui de Sand, et Lui et elle de Paul de Musset, le frère de l'écrivain.
ellauri109.html on line 457: Flaubert n’est pas dupe. Il administre à cette innocente douteuse une morale qui mériterait d’être ajoutée au Dictionnaire des idées reçues : « Il est dans les idées reçues qu’on ne va pas se promener avec un homme au clair de lune pour admirer la lune. » Mais Musset a beau être diminué, il a été célèbre, ils se voient, tandis que Flaubert, tout mâle qu’il est, reste bien abstrait dans sa retraite de Croisset, à se battre comme un forcené avec l’expression. Il n’est pas facile d’être longtemps l’amante d’un obscur ermite ni de faire l’amour par correspondance. Le but est atteint puisque Flaubert s’interroge sous les yeux de Louise : « Ai-je été jaloux, moi, dans tout ça ? — Il se peut.
ellauri109.html on line 461: Il me déplaît pour avoir mis en axiomes et pratique « la Poésie du cœur » (double farce à l'usage des impuissants et des charlatans). En voilà un qui a été peu critique ! Il me paraît avoir eu sur l'humanité le coup d'œil d'un coiffeur sentimental ! Toujours « mon pauvre cœur », toujours les larmes ! — je crois du reste que la mère Colet l'a reproduit assez fidèlement ? et il est facile maintenant de le bien connaître. As-tu remarqué ses affectations de noblesse ? Ses éternels bals aux ambassades ? Comme c'est beau cet homme qui porte sa douleur dans le monde ! — telle qu'un bijou rare, pour l'ébahissement de ces Messieurs et ces Dames !
ellauri109.html on line 474: Translations of the fable were familiar enough in Britain but the subject of male bonding left some readers uneasy (as it very obviously did Elizur Wright). Eventually there appeared an 18th-century version in octosyllabic couplets that claimed to be ‘improved from Fontaine’. Here the couple are a male and female named Columbo and Turturella.
ellauri109.html on line 507: From the start, critics complained about the ostensible sameness of Roth’s books, their narcissism and narrowness—or, as he himself put it, comparing his own work to his father’s conversation, “Family, family, family, Newark, Newark, Newark, Jew, Jew, Jew.” Roth turned self-obsession into art. He was a consummate bullshit artist.
ellauri109.html on line 517: When Updike, in the eighties, felt the sour breath of potential biographers on his neck, he tried to preëmpt his pursuers by writing a series of autobiographical essays about such topics as the Pennsylvania town where he grew up, his stutter, and his skin condition. The resulting collection, “Self-Consciousness,” is a dazzlingly intimate book, but his imagination and industry did more to draw biographical attention than to repel it. In the weeks before his death, of lung cancer, in early 2009, he continued to write, including an admiring review of Blake Bailey’s biography of John Cheever. And five years later there it was: “Updike,” a biography by Adam Begley.
ellauri109.html on line 551: Kleinschmidt published a journal article in which he describes the case of a “successful Southern playwright” with an overbearing mother: “His rebellion was sexualized, leading to compulsive masturbation which provided an outlet for a myriad of hostile fantasies. These same masturbatory fantasies he both acted out and channeled into his writing.” Roth, who was obviously Kleinschmidt’s “playwright,” saw the article just after finishing the novel. He spent multiple sessions berating Kleinschmidt for this “psychoanalytic cartoon” and yet continued his analysis with him for years.
ellauri109.html on line 565: “Sabbath’s Theater” (1995). is probably the most profane of Roth’s novels; it was also his favorite, the book in which he felt himself to be utterly free and at his best. “Céline is my Proust,” he used to say.
ellauri109.html on line 571: In his fury and his hunger for retribution, Roth produced “Notes for My Biographer,” an obsessive, almost page-by-page rebuttal of Bloom’s memoir: “Adultery makes numerous bad marriages bearable and holds them together and in some cases can make the adulterer a far more decent husband or wife than . . . the domestic situation warrants. (See Madame Bovary for a pitiless critique of this phenomenon.)” Only at the last minute was Roth persuaded by friends and advisers not to publish the diatribe, but he could never put either of his marriages behind him for good. He was similarly incapable of setting aside much smaller grievances. As Benjamin Taylor, one of his closest late-in-life friends, put it in “Here We Are,” a loving, yet knowing, memoir, “The appetite for vengeance was insatiable. Philip could not get enough of getting even.”
ellauri109.html on line 585: Why shouldn’t I be treated as seriously as Colette on this? She gave a blow job to this guy in the railway station. Who gives a fuck about that? . . . That doesn’t tell me anything. What did hand jobs mean to her? Why did she like that?”
ellauri109.html on line 591: Roth began to hear that Miller was describing him as “manic-depressive.” The theatre critic and producer Robert Brustein, an old friend of Roth’s, reported back that Miller had told him, “He knows he’s writing shit now. It just lies there like a lox.” By the end of 2009, the arrangement and the friendship were over. So was Roths career.
ellauri109.html on line 597: In 2012, Roth invited Blake Bailey to his apartment, on West Seventy-ninth Street, for a kind of job interview. After quizzing Bailey on how a Gentile from Oklahoma could possibly write the life of a Jew from Newark, the deal was made. “I don’t want you to rehabilitate me,” Roth told him. “Just make me interesting.”
ellauri109.html on line 642: Sekä aivan mahoton narsisti. Se on hapan koska Maureenin mies no 2 on komeampi ja julkkixempi kuin se. Hän osaa olla tärkeilevä snobi ja typerys. Hänen emotionaalinen kylmyytensä kasvaa pitkin harppauxin. Hänen kyvyttömyytensä rakastaa on suorastaan pelottavaa. Infantiiliasteelle jäänyt uivelo.
ellauri109.html on line 647: Faulknerin paska kirjoitti koppavassa nobelpuheessaan (jollaista Phillu ei sitten päässyt pitämään) mm seuraavaa:
ellauri109.html on line 654: Autobion kuuluisat viimeiset sanat kuuluvat: Ja minä minä! Tämä minä joka on minä eikä kukaan muu!
ellauri109.html on line 666: On 1 December 1663 Dryden married the royalist sister of Sir Robert Howard—Lady Elizabeth. Dryden's works occasionally contain outbursts against the married state but also celebrations of the same. Little is known of the intimate side of his marriage. Lady Elizabeth bore three sons and outlived her husband. Se sai sitten luritella tota abit onusta, kun anus-Jussi kuoli ensinnä.
ellauri109.html on line 668: On 1 December 1663 Dryden married Lady Elizabeth Howard (died 1714). The marriage was at St. Swithin's, London, and the consent of the parents is noted on the licence, though Lady Elizabeth was then about twenty-five. She was the object of some scandals, well or ill founded; it was said that Dryden had been bullied into the marriage by her playwright brothers. A small estate in Wiltshire was settled upon them by her father. The lady's intellect and temper were apparently not good; her husband was treated as an inferior by those of her social status. Oi, monitoinikone! Olli, minä olen mistelin alla! (Doris ja sen menestynyt mies on etelässä joululomalla.)
ellauri109.html on line 749: One of the first attacks on Dryden's reputation was by William Wordsworth, who complained that Dryden's descriptions of natural objects in his translations from Virgil were much inferior to the originals. However, several of Wordsworth's contemporaries, such as George Crabbe, Lord Byron, and Walter Scott (who edited Dryden's works), were still keen admirers of Dryden.
ellauri109.html on line 783: Leah had experienced many calamities long before the loss of her baby. As a child, she and her family had joined thousands of Jews fleeing violence in Yemen. They were robbed as they trekked from one end of the country to the other and Leah was reduced to begging for food. Then they were rescued in an airlift known as Operation Magic Carpet.
ellauri109.html on line 840: "It's probably the most tragic story of the return of Jews to Israel."
ellauri110.html on line 137: Book IV of Gulliver's Travels is the keystone, in some ways, of the entire work,[citation needed] and critics have traditionally answered the question whether Gulliver is insane (and thus just another victim of Swift's satire) by questioning whether or not the Houyhnhnms are truly admirable. Gulliver loves the land and is obedient to a race that is not like his own. The Houyhnhnm society is based upon reason, and only upon reason, and therefore the horses practice eugenics based on their analyses of benefit and cost. They have no religion and their sole morality is the defence of reason, and so they are not particularly moved by pity or a belief in the intrinsic value of life. Gulliver himself, in their company, builds the sails of his skiff from "Yahoo skins".
ellauri110.html on line 147: On the other hand, Swift was profoundly mistrustful of attempts at reason that resulted in either hubris (for example, the Projectors satirised in A Tale of a Tub or in Book III of Gulliver's Travels) or immorality (such as the speaker of A Modest Proposal, who offers an entirely logical and wholly immoral proposal for cannibalism). The Houyhnhnms embody both the good and the bad side of reason, for they have the pure language Swift wished for and the amorally rational approach to solving the problems of humanity (Yahoos); the extirpation of the Yahoo population by the horses is very like the speaker of A Modest Proposal.
ellauri110.html on line 318: Lydia Volchaninova, a good-looking, but very stern and opinionated young teacher with somewhat dictatorial inclinations is deeply engaged in the affairs of the local zemstvo. Devoted to the cause of helping peasants, she is interested in doing and speaking of nothing but practical work, mostly in the fields of medicine and education. Lydia dislikes the protagonist, a landscape painter, who frequently visits their house. From time to time the two clash over problems of both the rural community and Russia as a whole.
ellauri110.html on line 322: The following day he learns that Zhenya and her mother had departed. A boy hands him a note from Znenya, which reads: "I have told my sister everything and she insists on my parting from you. I could not hurt her by disobeying. God will give you happiness. If you knew how bitterly mamma and I have cried." The painter leaves the place too. The last glimpse of hope to fill his lonely life with any kind of meaning is now gone, and the person who robbed him of it was Lydia, the one who cared for nothing but bettering other people's lives. Time passes, but he cannot forget Zhenya and deep in his heart knows she still thinks of him, too.
ellauri110.html on line 349: Propriety did not prevent him from engaging in a number of extramarital liaisons with various women that were chronicled in his diary, often in some detail when relating the intimate details. The most dramatic of these encounters was with Deborah Willet, a young woman engaged as a companion for Elisabeth Pepys. On 25 October 1668, Pepys was surprised by his wife as he embraced Deb Willet; he writes that his wife "coming up suddenly, did find me imbracing the girl con [with] my hand sub [under] su [her] coats; and endeed I was with my main [hand] in her cunny. I was at a wonderful loss upon it and the girl also...." Following this event, he was characteristically filled with remorse, but (equally characteristically) continued to pursue Willet after she had been dismissed from the Pepys household. Pepys also had a habit of fondling the breasts of his maid Mary Mercer while she dressed him in the morning.
ellauri110.html on line 363: Sam petti Bettyä minkä ehti, mutta ehti olla silti mustasukkainen. Kun Betty meni tanssitunnille, Sam kokeili sen hameen alta onko sillä pikkuhousuja. 6. Februari 1660 hatte Sam Fräulein Ann "einmal so richtig probiert". "Ich tat mit ihr was ich wollte, jedoch nicht die Hauptsache." Ihr gefiel die Ehe so wenig, dass sie ihn schon zweimal innerhalb der Stunde "ranliess". "Nach vielerlei Protesten habe ich zu meinem grossen Vergnügen dort angelangt, wohin ich wollte." Annettuaan vaimo Bettylle mustan silmän Piips meni toisen Bettyn pakeille: "Ich wollte es, und ich nahm sie gegen ihren Willen." Als Betty ein Kind erwartete, tat er mit Dolly was er wollte: "Ich wäre zu allem fähig gewesen."
ellauri110.html on line 488: Laulu lainaa; Toivo on maanpäällinen kompassini; (Nikolai Dobronravovin sanat, Alexandra Pakhmutovan musiikki) esittivät useat muusikot. Ensimmäisenä esiintyjänä toimi Edita Piekha. Myöhemmin Anna German lauloi laulun. Ja festivaalin viimeisessä konsertissa laulu-75quot; Tarnopolin Hopeaquoti; esittäjä Muslim Magomajev, koska kukaan edellä mainituista naisista ei voinut osallistua konsertin kuvaamiseen. Lisäksi tämän kappaleen esitti yhtye quot; Nadezhda; joka ei saanut nimeään kunniaksi. Lähde - Wikipedia.
ellauri110.html on line 637: Handen poliittis-ideologinen credo on tässä: Se ei usko mihinkään tarjolla olevista jumalista, mutta kyllä elämään, sen ihmeeseen, pyhyyteen, luontoon, kauneuteen jonka tajuamiseen tarvitaan ihminen, eli siis ihmiseen. Ihminen on luonnon ydin. Poliittisesti Hande edustaa vähäisemmistöä, eli enemmistöä. Doston sorrettuja ja solvaistuja. Se elää sillä puolella barrikadia, halusi tai ei. On sitä sevverran paljon solvaistu, ja tässäkin vaan tulee lisää. Kirjailijan on oltava kansan puolella, sixikin, että kansaa on enemmistö lukijoita, kirjoja ostavaa ja kirjailijaa ihailevaa yleisöä. Vähän snobi voi silti olla, muttei liian.
ellauri110.html on line 676: Se päivä on tuleva on oleva kirjan nimi. Jobin kirja puhuu suoraan snobille: mutta kun mies kuolee makaa hän martaana. Missä hän on sitten? Onx tää joku kompa? Makaa martaana, as you said. Entäs naiset? No kuka välittää. Kuulkaa tämä sana te Baasanin lehmät!
ellauri110.html on line 733: Hande diggaa L. Onervan eli Hilja Lehtisen runoja. Hilja eli 90-vuotiaaxi pikku eukkosexi ja lepää nyt Hietaniemessa Leevi Madetojan hännän alla. Yxi Hiljan kokoelmista on nimeltään Jerufalemin fuutari. Hilja oli varmaan lukenut Isak Julinin 1907 julaiseman vihkosen tästä fuutarista. Melvillekin luki saman vihkosen ja pani Moby Dickin tappajaxi Ahasveruxen. Moby oli syönyt munat siltä, siitä katkeruus.
ellauri110.html on line 925: Не печалься, Бобби. Cheer up, Bobby.
ellauri110.html on line 929: Pushkin tykkäs imettäjästä enemmän kuin äidistä. Ei vanha tammi ollut nähnyt Pushkinia, ei sillä ole silmiä, mutta Pushkin oli ehkä nähnyt sen pienenä. Vain vilpilliset ovat vilpittömiä, koko sana on niiden keximä. Runous ja rakkaus, rakkaus ja runous. Toinen "tunne" auttaa toista, mitä vittua? Ei runous ole tunne Mäkelä? Pointin kyllä arvaan, runous on kuin Bob Dylanin huuliharppu tai sähkökitara, sitä näppäiltyään pääsee huulille ja kohtapuoleen näppäilemään alahuulia. Ja sitten kipeät ja kepeät hyvästit, ainakin jos on kyse runoilijasta izestään. Kestä muustakaan.
ellauri110.html on line 946: Existen dudas o desacuerdos sobre la exactitud de la información en este artículo o sección respecto a que si nació en 1920 y murió en 1994 no puede tener 72 años. En la página de discusión puedes consultar el debate al respecto.
ellauri110.html on line 952: Ha escrito poesía, novela, teatro y ensayo. Su obra pasa de ser intimista a ser comprometida con lo social.
ellauri110.html on line 1046: Ei vitussa se ole mikään Max Jakobsonin idea, vaan vanha viidakon sananlasku:
ellauri110.html on line 1058: It’s like a strong man who has formed a glob of spit on the tip of his tongue. He could easily spit it out. In the same way, life as a human is like a glob of spit. …
ellauri110.html on line 1104: Dosto oli patakonservatiivi xenofobi slavofiili. Epileptinen misogyyni. Hymistelijöiden kuningas. Sen suhtautuminen mamuvankikavereihin oli törkeä. Mixkähän mä en pidä siitä (enää). Idiootti teki muhun teini-ikäisenä vahvan säväyxen. Tuhannen samanlaisen ernun lailla tunsin olevani ruhtinas Myshkin valepuvussa. Toinen samantyyppinen napaantuijottavien nuorten kirjailija oli Herman Hesse. Näissä porukoissa on jotain hyvin keskiluokkaista. Ylemmän keskiluokan aatteluus velvoittaa.
ellauri110.html on line 1144: Tekoäly voisi korjata ikiaikaisia vääryyxiä esim antaa orpolapsen kiltille äitipuolelle. Mutta sotilaallisia ja poliittisia päätöxiä ei pidä alistaa koneelle. Eihän siihen saumaan sovi laittaa robotteja, päätöxistä vois erehdyxessä tulla kompromisseja tai mikä pahempaa puolueettomia. Ei vittu apinat tehkööt järjettömät päätöxet jota sitten toteutetaan koneella. Värsyn pääsin eille vaikka konehella veisattiin.
ellauri111.html on line 37: Westerners love psychobabble. American conservatives consider Devils a definitive refutation of socialism. His writing is phantastic but his messages are delusional. The entire Russian literature is depressing. Dostoevsky is theatrical. Apparently, Fyodor improves a lot in translation.
ellauri111.html on line 48: Dima Vorobiev, ex-venäläinen propagandapäällikkö:
ellauri111.html on line 67: Xenofobinen konservatismi. Dostoyevsky oli aktiivinen ryssien persupiireissä. Se kuoli ennen pogromeja, mutta sen päiväkirjat on täynnä polysemiaa. Eniten se vihas länkkäreitä, etenkin polakkeja (sillä oli vanhaa kaunaa polakeille vankilasta), ja liberaaleja se inhosi. Tämän päivän ryssäpersut, radikaalit oikkarit, ortodoxihihhulit ja militantit lojalistit löytää siltä läjäpäin meemejä. Dosto on sun kaveri jos haluat vastustaa globaaliliberaaleja ja Navalnyjtä ym. oligarkkeja. Nettimeemeistä vois luulla että Dosto on hullu hillbilly jostain Amerikan perämezistä joka on ajautunut Pietariin. Sen käsityxet ihmissielusta jota ahdistavat sisäpuolelta syntiset järjettömät halut ja liberalismin, ateismin ja edistyxen pirut ulkoa, tekis siitä eturiivin jenkkievankelistan, paizi eze ize ällös myös amerikkalaisia.
ellauri111.html on line 83: Tobit
ellauri111.html on line 112: At the Council of Trent (1546) the Roman Catholic institution pronounced the following apocryphal books sacred. They asserted that the apocryphal books together with unwritten tradition are of God and are to be received and venerated as the Word of God. So now you have the Bible, the Apocrypha and Catholic Tradition as co-equal sources of truth for the Catholic. In reality, it seems obvious that the Bible is the last source of truth for Catholics. Roman Catholic doctrine comes primarily from tradition stuck together with a few Bible names. In my reading of Catholic materials, I find notes like this: "You have to keep the Bible in perspective." Catholics have been deceived into not believing that the Bible is God's complete revelation for man (but they can come out of these deceptions in an instant if they will only believe the Bible as it is written) .
ellauri111.html on line 138: Tobit 12:8-9, 17, It is better to give alms than to lay up gold; for alms doth deliver from death, and shall purge away all sin.
ellauri111.html on line 142: Tobit 6:5-8, If the Devil, or an evil spirit troubles anyone, they can be driven away by making a smoke of the heart, liver, and gall of a fish...and the Devil will smell it, and flee away, and never come again anymore.
ellauri111.html on line 164: The Apocrypha began to be omitted from the Authorized Version in 1629. Puritans and Presbyterians lobbied for the complete removal of the Apocrypha from the Bible and in 1825 the British and Foreign Bible Society agreed. From that time on, the Apocrypha has been eliminated from practically all English Bibles--Catholic Bibles and some pulpit Bibles excepted.
ellauri111.html on line 170: "As the Church reads the books of Judith and Tobit and Maccabees but does not receive them among the canonical Scriptures, so also it reads Wisdom and Ecclesiasticus for the edification of the people, not for the authoritative confirmation of doctrine." Jerome.
ellauri111.html on line 228: “The question is: what is guilt and what is it to be guilty or to confess your guilt? Most people don’t understand this at all. They think it’s just a matter of fact – did he or didn’t he do it? If he did, he’s guilty, if he didn’t, he’s not guilty. Remember what Ivan Karamazov said, that everyone wants to kill their father – but the world knows many of these mental parricides as obedient and loving sons, who are not guilty of anything.”
ellauri111.html on line 267: “But I repeat,” he continued after a moment, raising his hands dramatically, “I am not demanding the maximum penalty of the law, not even for these torturers. I do not want them imprisoned, beaten, or executed, though I understand the outrage of people who do. Remember, when Ivan asked Alyosha what to do about the general who’d had the little boy torn to pieces by his dogs, even mild, sweet-tempered Alyosha said ‘Shoot him’. But that doesn’t help either. Just because I wrote a novel called Crime and Punishment, people imagine I’m obsessed with punishing. Not at all. All I want is that the guilty are not acquitted. That their guilt is clearly stated. And that they accept it—that’s the most important of all. Let them be found guilty—and let them go free.”
ellauri111.html on line 303: “Exactly! It’s a performance. It’s not the heart speaking. The heart would say something very different. In fact, the heart wouldn’t need to say very much at all: it has only one thing to say, to love and to ask for love, to forgive and to ask forgiveness. We’ve been talking about people who commit crimes but won’t own up to what they’ve done, people who want to say to anyone who’ll listen: ‘Not guilty! My conscience is clear! Don’t blame me!’ But the real problem is not the evidence of the facts—did he or didn’t he do this or say that. The real problem is that this is completely back to front. The person who loves, even if they haven’t committed any crimes, is the person who wants to be guilty, who doesn’t just want to forgive but wants to be forgiven; the person who thinks of themselves not only as guilty but infinitely guilty, guilty of everything, before everyone, in fact the guiltiest one of all.”
ellauri111.html on line 328: Posted in Äärikarismaattisuus, tagged ajan merkit, äärikarismaattisuus, Bill Johnson, Bob Jones, demonit, ehtoosade, eksytys, enkelikohtaamiset, enkelit, harhaopit, hengelliset kokemukset, henkien koetteleminen, henkivallat, ihmeet ja merkit, Joelin armeija, John Arnott, Jumalan Ilmestyslapset, juopuminen, karismaattisuus, Kenneth Copeland, Kenneth Hagin, kundaliini, Lakelandin parantumisherätys, Latter Rain, lopunaika, manifestaatiot, Manifested Sons of God, Marc Dupont, Mike Bickle ...
ellauri111.html on line 333: How to get to heaven? If you ask most people this question, they might say something like, "If you do more good things than bad things, God will probably let you into heaven." No! That kind of thinking will reserve your place in hell.
ellauri111.html on line 337: There is no amount of "good" that you can do that will pay for the sins that you (or your gene line) have already committed. Sins are the bad things that we do. Sin is when we disobey God's holy righteous laws. Criminals have to go to jail. They don't commit murder, promise to be good, and then avoid punishment. They have to pay for what they did. But we can (oops, I am getting ahead of myself.)
ellauri111.html on line 351: This is somehow different than just trying to be good enough, which we cannot do on our own. You see it's not really at all about goodness, it's all about obedience. To be saved, WE REPENT OF OUR OLD WAYS, BELIEVE IN JESUS, AND TRY TO OBEY HIS WORD. Then, as we strive to obey him/us, he helps us to obey him/us.
ellauri111.html on line 353: You might wonder what's the diff if you still need to do 3) anyway. Wasn't the point that Christ had already paid our bills? So why can't we just go on and sin, and then go back to step 1)? Admittedly, there is the timing problem, like what the Pope had, when he had to say last of all Amen, and he ended up saying instead, "No, minä..." Jokes aside, but yes, in principle that's the way it works. It is never too late to repent, though there are a few things that are unpardonable, like making fun of the Holy Ghost, and converting to Islam (for some creeds at least).
ellauri111.html on line 355: Let's go over it all once more. Repetitio mater studiorum. We are sinners. We sin when we do things that God's word, the Bible, says that we are not do. Every person has sinned. People lie, disobey their parents, steal, kill, commit whoredom (being naked with people that they are not married to, like your parents or in the sauna - makes sense, it is a definite foretaste of hell), are prideful, jealous, envious, covetous, boasters, drunkards, traitors, and more. There are no good deeds that you can do on your own that will erase the sins that you have committed.
ellauri111.html on line 381: To get into heaven, you have to REPENT of your sins and BELIEVE the gospel of Jesus Christ (ref. Mark 1:15). You have to REPENT of your sins--that means turn from them and BELIEVE that Jesus died for your sins, was buried, and rose again on the third day. Having done these things, you will be born again and the Lord Jesus Christ will help you to walk uprightly. You will read the word (the Authorized King James Bible) and follow the teachings of Jesus. The word of God will wash your mind and your desires will actually change as you obey what you read. [Beware of church buildings and the internet--there are many false gospels in the world today. Read the Bible for yourself. There is a sound Overview of the Bible at this link.]
ellauri111.html on line 387: The Bible says that nobody is good enough to get into heaven. We have all sinned. Each one of us has broken God's commandments--not one person is excepted. You have personally lied and committed other sins. Don't argue, it's an axiom!
ellauri111.html on line 404: And what is love? Keeping God's commandments! Loving is obeying! Obeying is loving! Like your wife or your dog, you know they love you because they obey you.
ellauri111.html on line 419: On the other hand, he loves us back, but in HIS case, it is not that he obeys us, but rather the opposite, he lets us obey him! That's love for him! And if we don't he punishes us! That's love too! Like a loving father he lets his big hammer come down on our disobedient heads. Can't you feel it? And oh, the towering feeling Just to know somehow you are near. The over powering feeling, That any second you may suddenly appear.
ellauri111.html on line 421: That was that. Now we are getting to the brass tacks. Here's where we start whacking heretics. The unshaved, degenerate man does not keep God's commandments. God's commandments are in the Bible. The unshaved man does whatever he feels like doing every day giving no heed to God's word. He is not obedient to God's word. He lives according to the ways he chooses to live. Maybe the person reading this is what people call "religious" and they think that they love God. If you are not worshipping God according to his word, the Bible, he is not receiving your worship. This includes those that go to a church that teaches false doctrines--teachings that are not in the Bible. They that worship God must worship him in spirit and IN TRUTH (ref. John 4:24). And what is truth? Jesus said to the Father--
ellauri111.html on line 443: God does not want to remain your enemy and he does not want you to go to hell. Well he wants to be our enemy long enough to scare us into obedience. Why he didn't just make us so from the beginning may make you wonder, but never mind. There are more wonderful things reserved for us to wonder at. He is a friend at heart, though he may strike you as a bully.
ellauri111.html on line 488: The Lord Jesus Christ came to save you from both the GUILT and POWER of sin. The Lord Jesus Christ was manifested TO DESTROY the works of the devil (I John 3:8)--THE LORD JESUS CHRIST CAME TO SAVE YOU AND CHANGE YOU AND TO MAKE YOU HOLY. When you are unsaved, sin has dominion over you. Sin is your boss and you cannot do anything BUT sin. You are justly under the wrath of a holy and just God. Murderers, thieves, fornicators, witches, sodomites, whores, liars, lovers of pleasure more than lovers of God, rebels, and all other spiritual lepers will not inherit the kingdom of God. This is not to put anybody down, before we got saved, we Christians were once the murders, thieves, whoremongers, etc. We have to be born again into the kingdom of God. When we REPENT and BELIEVE in Jesus, we are born again and all things become new. A new life emerges and things change. We start reading the Bible and obeying it and the Lord Jesus helps us obey it more and more. Our life changes. Our desires literally change as we go forward in obeying the word of God.
ellauri111.html on line 525: 2:2 Wherein in time past ye walked according to the course of this world, according to the prince of the power of the air, the spirit that now worketh in the children of disobedience:
ellauri111.html on line 596: If you have placed your faith in the Lord Jesus Christ, you are a Christian. If you continue repeating his words like a parrot, then are you his disciple indeed (ref. John 8:31). Now begins your new life of freedom and obedience to the Lord and serving him.
ellauri111.html on line 609: 12 Let not sin therefore reign in your mortal body, that ye should obey it in the lusts thereof.
ellauri111.html on line 620: Avoid any church that is in disobedience to the scriptures. These are the days of apostasy. It is better to work alone with your Authorized King James Bible and the Lord Jesus Christ and obedience to the word than to be in a false church. Even if you do not know any Christians, you can still read the Bible and obey it, and live the Christian life by God´s grace, his divine influence in your life. Roman Catholic, Mormon, Seventh Day Adventist, Jehovah´s Witness, Christian Science, Greek Orthodox, etc. present themselves as Christian but they preach false doctrines. Many Methodist, Lutheran, Presbyterian, and Baptist churches are not preaching the whole truth and some are basically going back to the Roman Catholic institution. I do not know of ONE good church. If you do find a church, make sure that they exclusively use the Authorized Version and make sure that you compare their teachings and doings to the word of God and the Bible Dudes.
ellauri111.html on line 642: Even when a Christian woman is washing the dishes and taking care of her children she is doing sanctified work--she is fulfilling the scriptures; women are to be keepers at home. When a man provides for his family, he is fulfilling the scriptures. When we consecrate ourselves and our things (house, apartment, furniture, grass, etc.), daily living takes on a new dimension. It also gives you a lot of things to do for the time freed from watching TV and playing with the mobile. Did I mention the mobile? DON´T EVEN THINK OF IT!
ellauri111.html on line 644: As time goes along we are in a position to receive whichever spiritual gift(s) that God is pleased to give us, e.g., exhortation, prophesy, teaching, etc. (the gifts are found in the New Testament epistles (letters)). The apostle Paul teaches us that we should desire to prophesy because then we speak to men unto edification, exhortation, and comfort (I Corinthians 14:1)--just ask God for what you want and just walk on in obdience to the word--we can help the saints to go forward and be built up and be comforted (I Corinthians 14:3).
ellauri111.html on line 658: As we read the Bible and obey it and pray, the Lord will lead us as to what we should do. Just taking care of our families and being obedient to the scriptures is good--just staying in position, taking care of our responsibilities, and being ready to give an answer to every man that asketh us a reason of the hope that is in us (these things are in the Bible, we just read and follow).
ellauri111.html on line 662: When we first get shaved between the thighs, we can be excited and carried away and ready to try to do everything. That was my case. One day I saw a line that said something like this "God is not in a hurry." As I recall, for some reason it settled me down some. Keep reading and obeying the word (the Bible), fulfill your daily responsibilites, and pray--you will automatically grow just as surely as a baby grows up to be an adult. We start out as babes in Christ and as we go forward reading and obeying and having our senses exercised by life experiences, we grow up and mature in the Lord.
ellauri111.html on line 693: Again, The Bible forbids women being pastors and speaking in churches but many women have taken pulpits and other church positions in complete disobedience to the scriptures. This does not mean that there is no work for women in the kingdom of God (you may wish to see our article entitled, "The Role of Women in the Church). These are the days of apostasy. It is better to be alone with your Bible and the Lord Jesus and obedience than to be in a false church. Roman Catholic, Mormon, Seventh Day Adventist, Jehovah's Witness, Christian Science, Greek Orthodox, etc. present themselves as Christian but they preach false doctrines. Many Methodist, Lutheran, Presbyterian, and Baptist churches are not preaching the whole truth and some are basically going back to the Roman Catholic institution. I do not know of ONE good church. If you find a church, make sure that they exclusively use the Authorized Version and make sure that you compare their teachings and doings to the word of God.
ellauri111.html on line 697: Warning: obey the Authorized Version of 1611 of the Bible only and accept no new "techniques" e.g., meditation and yoga-type practices (repetitious "prayers" (actually mantras), etc.).
ellauri111.html on line 699: "Contemplative" prayer is essentially an old occult technique adjusted to the ignorant church people. It can bring up that yoga kundalini serpent power. With open eyes, one can see this type of technique being magnified in society--I saw a book for magic in a place for shipping goods and for photocopies, office supplies, etc. I looked on the back of the book, it was the same technique as the church people are using. This is spreading like wildfire and not just amongst false (or extremely ignorant) brethren, it is throughout society. Revelation 13:8 teaches us that all people who are not in the book of life of the Lamb slain from the foundation of the world will worship the beast. Revelation 13:4 says that all the world will worship the dragon which gave power unto the beast--we learn from Revelation 12 that THE DRAGON IS SATAN. In the ecumenical movement (all the religions getting together in "peace") and under a "meditative" spirituality, Hindus, Buddhists, Roman Catholics, church people, atheists, Muslims, cabalists, new agers, etc. can get together and have a "meditation" session with no problems. This is not for the future, it is already happening, I picked up a brochure about some sessions while at a library. In Contemplative prayer, church people are calling the devil by the Lord's name. I read that many of them will not listen to the scriptures when confronted with the truth--they do not know the Lord's voice, they are not his sheep. Worldly people are under the devil and they despise holiness and speak against it as "legalism" or even as heresy or false doctrine. I have seen extreme antinomianism in Baptist churches. They derisively call work-out-your-own-salvation-with-fear-and-trembling discipleship "Lordship salvation". If a person does not obey the Lord, they are not saved. The reader may wish to see our article, Lordship Salvation.
ellauri111.html on line 703: BEWARE OF THE HELL BOUND CHURCH PEOPLE--ALL OF THEM! IF YOU FOLLOW THEIR DOCTRINES, YOU WILL GO TO HELL TOO! They will tell you you can do what you feel like doing--doing all the sins you want to--and that you will still go to heaven. That is a lie from the devil and totally the opposite of what the Bible says. Nobody will sin their way into heaven. Ephesians 5:6 says, Let no man deceive you with vain words: for because of these things cometh the wrath of God upon the children of disobedience. If you do not repent, believe AND follow the commands of Jesus, you are not saved. If Jesus is not your Lord, he is not your Saviour, you are yet in your sins. For more on this, you may wish to see our article entitled, Lordship Salvation.
ellauri111.html on line 705: FLEE FROM "CONTEMPLATIVE PRAYER", "EMERGING 'CHURCH'", "CONTEMPLATIVE SPIRITUALITY" "ANCIENT FUTURE CHURCH", etc. In this movement, these people are learning and using black magic type occult techniques in churches! In disregard and disobedience to the Bible, they THEY TELL PEOPLE TO CLEAR THEIR MINDS AND KEEP REPEATING THE NAME OF THE LORD OR SOME OTHER NAME. They say that focusing on the Bible is a hinderance to prayer--yes, the Bible is a hinderance to praying to the DEVIL!!!!!!!!!!!!! Praise the Lord!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!! Stay away from people who want to teach you to pray to the devil calling the devil by the name of the Lord. Flee from anybody who puts down the word of God--they are doing that so that you will be defenseless against their lies. These are the end times and now church people are being deceived into CALLING AND SUMMON DEVILS! The emerging church of the devil is using the same yoga-type techniques as hindus, buddhists Roman Catholic mystics, Greek orthodox mystics, occultists and other mystical traditions. The people are even warned about the possibility of encountering evil spirits during these exercises--no regular prayer requires a warning, no, no, no--BUT PRAYING TO THE DEVIL DOES! AND WHEN THAT KUNDALINI SERPENT POWER RISES UP IN THESE PEOPLE, THEY WILL EITHER BECOME MAGICIANS OR GO INSANE OR SOME OTHER HORRIBLE THING--THERE ARE SYMPTOMS AND MANIFESTATIONS! CHURCH PEOPLE ARE GOING TOWARDS BEING POSSESSED! These are last days--BE WARE, DEAR ONE, BE WARE!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!! GET SAVED, READ YOUR BIBLE AND OBEY IT AND LEAVE THE TELEVISION ALONE!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!! THE BEAST IS COMING!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!
ellauri111.html on line 707: One more thing--be ware of "new age" teaching--you are not God, you are not divine, and God is not in everybody--all that pantheism (everything is God) and panentheism (God is in everything) is new age teaching which is actually old age because the devil told Eve in the garden, "Ye shall be as gods" (see Genesis chapter 3). The devil is a spirit--he is not dead and he has been telling that same lie ever since then. There is a lot more to this situation, but just get saved and obedient and live reconciled to God. Do not put your trust in science, etc. In the beginning, God created the heaven and the earth--there is no evolution. Evolution is a big fat lie and a hoax to get people to disbelieve the word of God. Science...many, many lies are told by people in white labcoats. Believe and obey God's word and you will be safe and whole and of an understanding mind and not of a reprobate mind.
ellauri111.html on line 709: Look around, the more the leaders make plans, the worse things get--child abuse, drug addiction, abortion, murders, shoplifting, lying, compulsive disorders, broken families, directionless young people, mind-killing school system, panic attacks, reprobate mind laws, denying God and his word, etc. This thing called time is coming to an end. The heavens above and the earth beneath that you see before your eyes are going to be burned up completely and dissolved. The day of the Lord is coming and we will all stand before God at the final judgment and the books are going to be opened. We will all be there--including all the dead people...they won't be left out--nobody will be left out.
ellauri111.html on line 723: There has been a lot of talk about "aliens" for some time and the talk continues; some kind of sky show may be in the future. If you see something in the air, it is not because there are true aliens. But what about devils? yes there are devils; what about oversized genetically modified organisms and chimeras? maybe; possessed people? yes there are; 3D pictures, yes; pheromones, yes; unrevealed inventions and laws, in all probability, yes. If you hear a voice, see lights, or whatever, compare everything to the Bible--we believe in the Bible above our senses. This is a time of deception. You will not be deceived if you read and obey the scriptures. Read Matthew 24 (and other passages as well) for what is going to happen when the Lord returns. An excerpt--
ellauri111.html on line 743: I learned more about the Kundalini after researching the contemplative prayer movement that is entering the emerging church of the devil and the fallen, disobedient-to-the-scriptures churches that would not necessarily describe themselves as "emerging church", "ancient future church", etc. Kundalini awakening can be triggered unintentionally. Satan just waits for the conditions to be right. Some people go insane, check into mental hospitals over and over again, experience personality changes, cannot function as before, commit suicide, etc. Kundalini awakening (a counsel for leaving it behind) is discussed further in our series, "Contemplative Prayer: A Quick Road to Hell for A Disobedient Church."
ellauri111.html on line 747: Cults like "the Church of Christ" will try to convince you that water baptism saves you and that you have to join their specific "church" and not drink coffee, etc. These cults take certain scriptures out of context and then mix them up in order to deceive people. I'm not minimizing the importance of the ordinance of baptism--you need to be baptized--but cults mix up the doctrines of the Lord to deceive people. YOU NEED TO READ YOUR BIBLE. The Roman Catholic institution is another cult. It is not a Christian church. Her doctrines are the opposite of the Bible. If you are a former Roman Catholic, you need to get rid of all the paraphenalia and graven images and idols that you may have collected through the years (e.g., rosary, St. Anthony, crucifixes, relics, candles, Mary prayers, pictures, etc.). The Seventh Day Adventists will try to get you to follow the teachings of Ellen White, a false prophetess who made prophecies that did not come to pass and put all kinds of requirements on people that are not in the Bible. The Mormons are a another cult. They teach that their males can become gods some day with their own planets. Please don't look up all these cults. Just focus on reading your Bible and obeying it. Then you will be able to discern if a person is speaking according to the word or not.
ellauri111.html on line 749: If you have not trusted Christ, you are in a dangerous position. John 3:36 says, "...he that believeth not the Son shall not see life; but the wrath of God abideth on him." You will not make it into heaven on your own "good merits" or by your own conception of who God is and what he should be like. He must be obeyed and worshipped according to his word, the Authorized King James Bible. The Lord Jesus Christ is altogether lovely and worthy to be praised. I hope that you will make the right choice.
ellauri112.html on line 49: Kysymys siitä, onko sielua pidettävä ykseytenä vaiko moninaisuutena, on, voimme sanoa, aina ollut filosofien harrastuksen polttopisteessä. Sehän oli myös niitä kohtia, joissa vanhojen empiristien ja ratsionalistien mielipiteet jyrkimmin menivät vastakkain. Descartes'n »anima», »substantia cogitans», samoinkuin ob">Leibniz'in »monadi» ovat aina säilyttäneet viehätysvoimansa spiritualistisissa mielissä, joille oppi ehdottomasti yksinkertaisesta ja jakamattomasta sielu-ykseydestä, sielunelämän muuttumattomasta 'kannattajasta' on ollut mieleinen, heidän kuolemattomuustoiveitaan ja metafyysillisen dualismin oppiaan tukevana. Epäilemättä jonkunverran hedelmällisempi on ollut englantilainen empirismi, jota sielutieteessä n. s. »assosiatsio-psykologia» on kannattanut. Tämä suunta, sellaisena kuin sitä ovat edustaneet Englannissa varsinkin Hume, Stuart Mill ja Bain ja Ranskassa Taine on kieltämättä päässyt huomattavan pitkälle pyrkimyksissään kohti varsinaista tieteellistä psykologiaa. Mutta toiselta puolen oli sen sielutieteellinen peruskäsitys--tapa käsittää sielunelämä erillisten mielteiden kokoomukseksi ja selittää sielulliset synteesit pelkästään näiden erillisten mielteiden mekaanisten yhtymisten, s. o. assosiatsioiden kautta--tämä käsitys oli epäilemättä tosiasioille väkivaltaa tekevä. Tämä kävikin ilmeiseksi m.m. sen kautta, että sekä Hume että Stuart Mill nimenomaan tunnustivat seisovansa voimattomina tärkeimmän sielullisen synteesin, minuuden, edessä ja myönsivät olevansa kykenemättömiä sen syntyä selittämään.
ellauri112.html on line 59: Täten nykyisessä sielutieteessä on huomattavana tuntuvaa sielunelämän kokonaisuuden ja »sielullisen synteesin» tehostamista erillisten sielunainesten kustannuksella. »Sielullinen synteesi» on nykyisessä psykologiassa tavattoman tärkeä ja paljon käytetty käsite. Siten on m.m. Wundt, määritellessään sen lain että sielullisten tekijäin antamassa yhteistuloksessa (synteesissä) aina on jotakin enemmän kuin pelkästään tekijäin summassa olisi, ja johtuen siten oppiin sielullisen energian kasvamisesta, vastakohtana opille fyysillisen energian säilymisestä, antanut paljon huomatun ilmaisun puheenalaiselle käsitteelle. Kenties vielä runsaamman käytännön on se saavuttanut ranskalaisessa sielutieteessä, joka viime vuosikymmeninä mielihalulla on käsitellyt suurinta sielutieteen kysymystä, problemia tärkeimmän psyykillisen synteesin, minuuden eli personallisuuden luonteesta, synnystä ja kokoonpanosta.
ellauri112.html on line 191: Renan huomauttaa että spekulatiivisessa filosofiassa aina on jotain, mikä muistuttaa keskiaikaisen Raimundus Lulluksen fantastista konetta, jonka avulla pelkästään käsitteitä kombinoimalla piti löydettämän totuus ja vältettämän erehdys. Puhdas spekulatiivinen logiikka, jonka avulla on luultu voitavan vapautua kärsivällisestä tutkimuksesta ja työstä, on oikealle tieteelle yhtä vahingollinen kuin Lulluksen kone. Filosofoida on oppia tuntemaan universumi. Tämä on kokoonpantu fyysillisestä ja psyykillisestä maailmasta, luonnosta ja ihmiskunnasta. Siis on luonnon ja ihmiskunnan tutkimus koko filosofia[6]. Missään ei spekulatiivinen logiikka niin paljasta heikkouttaan kuin niissä tieteissä, jotka käsittelevät eläviä objekteja. Geometriassa, algebrassa jne., joissa ei välitetä todellisuudesta, on aateskelu paikallaan. Mutta sensijaan esim. ihmiskuntaa käsittelevissä tieteissä, joissa kaikki yleiset aatteet perustuvat vain puolittain totuuteen, puolittain erehdykseen, täytyy aateskelun tulokset askel askeleelta tarkistaa kokemuksen avulla. »Logiikka ei tavoita vivahduksia; mutta hengentieteiden alalla totuudet läpeensä piilevät vivahduksessa. Ne pujahtavat skolastiikan verkonsilmukoiden läpi; niitä ei katsella kasvoista kasvoihin, vaan ne löydetään osittain, salaisesti, milloin enemmän, milloin vähemmän» (Essais de morale etc., s. 189 ja seur.). Yllä harventamassani rivissä on Renan lausunut julki yhden bergsonilaisuuden ydinajatuksista. Mutta saman ajatuksen käsitteellisen ajattelun voimattomuudesta tapaa nykyään hyvin yleisesti muuallakin. On syytä sentähden vähän tarkastaa tuota merkillistä lausetta. Spekulatiolle, vastakohtana kokemustieteelle, on omituista, että se lähtee liikkeelle määrätyistä käsitteistä ja arvostelmista, jotka se muodostaa apriorisesti, ennen kokemusta, kun sensijaan kokemustiede kokonaan elää ja hengittää tutkimusesineessään, joka luo sen käyttämät käsitteet ja arvostelmat ja on valmis aina synnyttämään uusia, kun entiset osoittautuvat riittämättömiksi. Puhdas aateskelu kombinoi apriorisia arvostelmiaan ja tekee niistä täten johtopäätöksiä. Tämä ajatustyö noudattaa muodollisen logiikan lakeja, joista ensimäinen on se, että kukin käsite on muuttumaton, pysyy merkitykseltään identisenä. Kun tällaisen aateskelun tuloksia ruvetaan sovittamaan todellisuuteen, syntyy omituisia vaikeuksia. Tyydyn vain yhteen esimerkkiin, jota Bergson mielellään käyttää osoitteena abstraktisen logiikan heikkoudesta. Puhdas aateskelu, joka työskentelee sellaisilla määreillä kuin »ykseys» ja »moninaisuus», olettaen että ne voidaan sovelluttaa kaikkiin ajatuksen esineisiin poikkeuksetta, johtuu m. m. seuraavaan vaikeuteen: onko elävä organismi, onko sielunelämä »ykseys» vai »moninaisuus»? On selvää ettei kumpikaan näistä määreistä sovellu näihin objekteihin. Organismi, sielunelämä eivät ole sellaisia yksinkertaisia esineitä, jotka olisi leimattava joko »ykseyksiksi» tai »moninaisuuksiksi». Mitä voidaan päättää tästä? Tietenkin, että spekulatiivinen metodi on väärä, että jos lähdetään liikkeelle rajoitetusta määrästä käsitteitä, tullaan ennemmin tai myöhemmin kohtaan, jolloin yksikään näistä käsitteistä ei sovellu ilmaisemaan tarkoitettua ilmiötä. Kokemustiedolle sensijaan tätä vaikeutta ei esiinny; todellisuus, jossa se liikkuu ja elää, luo sille tarpeen tullen aina uusia käsitteitä. Katsokaamme spektriä, jossa auringon valkea valo yhdenjaksoisissa ylimenoissa taittuu lukemattomiin vivahduksiin, niin että jokainen spektrin poikkiviiva on hitusen verran toisenvärinen kuin edellinen! Jokapäiväinen kielenkäyttö tulee toimeen muutamalla, viidellä, kuudella värinimityksellä. Se yksinkertaisesti laiminlyö ylimenot yhdestä »väristä» toiseen. Mutta maalari, jolle värivivahdukset ovat arvokkaita, tarvitsee jo paljon suuremman määrän värejä ilmaisevia käsitteitä: ultramariini, karmiini jne. Mikään ei estäisi muodostamasta uusia värien käsitteitä tuhansiin saakka, aina värienerottamiskykymme rajaan asti.
ellauri112.html on line 210: 67 suhteet: Ahriman, Aleister Crowley, Altruismi, Amuletti, Anton LaVey, Ayn Rand, Azazel (demoni), Beelzebub, Charles Baudelaire, Charles Darwin, Dualismi (filosofia), Eenokin kieli, Epikurolaisuus, Eugeniikka, Evankeliumi Markuksen mukaan, Evoluutio, Fasismi, Friedrich Nietzsche, Halloween, Hedonismi, Herbert Spencer, Ikonografia, Itsesuggestio, Jobin kirja, John Milton, Juutalaisuus, Kadotettu paratiisi, Kansallissosialismi, Kesäpäivänseisaus, Keskiaika, Kevätpäiväntasaus, Kristinusko, Kun maailma järkkyi, Länsi, Lucifer, Max Stirner, Mefistofeles, Meritokratia, Niccolò Machiavelli, Okkultismi, Pakanaverkko, Parodia, Pentagrammi, Romantiikka, Saatana, Saatanallinen Raamattu, Saatanan kirkko, Saatananpalvonta, Seitsemän kuolemansyntiä, Seth, Setin Temppeli, Solipsismi, Sosiaalidarvinismi, Suomi, Syntymäpäivä, Syyspäiväntasaus, Taikuus (yliluonnollinen), Talvipäivänseisaus, Tanak, Teismi, Temppeliherrain ritarikunta, Thomas Hobbes, Valistus, Varhaiskristillisyys, Yhdysvallat, Yli-ihminen, Zarathustralaisuus.
ellauri112.html on line 240: Ayn Rand (oik. Ayn Rand O´Connor, alk. Alisa Zinovjevna Rozenbaum; 2. helmikuuta (J: 20. tammikuuta) 1905 Pietari, Venäjän keisarikunta – 6. maaliskuuta 1982 New York, Yhdysvallat) oli Venäjällä syntynyt, Yhdysvaltoihin muuttanut kirjailija ja filosofi, jonka perustama oppisuunta objektivismi korostaa objektiivisen todellisuuden, rationaalisen ajattelun, egoistisen etiikan ja kapitalistisen politiikan merkitystä.
ellauri112.html on line 260: Charles Robert Darwin (12. helmikuuta 1809 – 19. huhtikuuta 1882) oli englantilainen luonnontieteilijä, joka esitti kokoamaansa tieteelliseen todistusaineistoon nojaten kaikkien eliölajien kehittyneen ajan saatossa yhteisestä kantamuodosta luonnonvalinnaksi nimetyn prosessin kautta.
ellauri112.html on line 328:
Jobin kirja
ellauri112.html on line 330: Jobin kirja on yksi Raamatun Vanhan testamentin viisauskirjoista.
ellauri112.html on line 332: Uusi!!: Satanismi ja Jobin kirja · Katso lisää »
ellauri112.html on line 520: Thomas Hobbes
ellauri112.html on line 522: Thomas Hobbes (5. huhtikuuta 1588 Westport, Wiltshire – 4. joulukuuta 1679 Hardwick Hall, Derbyshire) oli englantilainen filosofi.
ellauri112.html on line 524: Uusi!!: Satanismi ja Thomas Hobbes · Katso lisää »
ellauri112.html on line 589: Marlo disapproves at first thinking that she can’t ask for the help she needs. She gives in and allows their new night nanny, Tully, to do her job and is quite impressed with the results. Marlo feels more in control of her life, the kids seem happy, and she’s willing to grow in her marriage to Drew.
ellauri112.html on line 601: Yes, we know that once a person has a kid their life changes completely, often with hardships and challenges along the way. But Reitman and Cody inject a level of warmth that prevents this from being simply depressing, at times it’s quite funny. Being a parent is a tough job, but it’s a necessary one – where would any of us be if there weren’t someone watching after us as toddlers?
ellauri112.html on line 606: In other countries both parents can hold jobs and both may and must take parent leave. This quick-witted dark comedy had me laughing out loud.
ellauri112.html on line 612: Drew loves Marlo and their children, he’s taken on more responsibility in his job, which yields a higher paycheck, but as a result, he’s stressed out. Me töihis. Mee Kouvolaan!
ellauri112.html on line 628: Sin tener muy claro en ningún momento si quiere ser una comedia cáustica o un melodrama reivindicativo, el filme destila feminismo desde el primero hasta el último fotograma y no huye ni siquiera de los clichés más obvios, como ese marido incomprensivo e insolidario que es un patán de tomo y lomo.
ellauri112.html on line 664: It explores the overwhelming job that motherhood is and showcases all sides of it, from the hilarious to the harrowing to the heartbreaking.
ellauri112.html on line 668: Marlo and Drew describe their boy Jonah as “quirky,” but he’s a real problem. He’s disrupting school as well as their lives on a daily basis. A royal pain in the ass. The big sis is a graceless little imp.
ellauri112.html on line 684: Marlo, already a mother of two, begins the film heavily, outrageously pregnant: we learn, in rapid succession, that this third pregnancy was unwanted, that her husband does little of the domestic labour, and that her “shitty” upbringing is the reason she’s so committed to her nuclear family unit. Postnatal depression, never named, haunts the narrative: her wealthy brother offers to pay for a night nanny to avoid, in his words, the advent of another “bad time” like the one that followed the birth of her son, Jonah. When the nanny arrives – described by more than one reviewer as a “millennial Mary Poppins” – the panacea seems to be working. Not only does she look after the baby at night but she also operates as a kind of empathy machine, listening to Marlo’s problems, sharing sangria in the garden, and baking the Minions cupcakes that Marlo herself never has the time to make. The postnatal depression, it seems, disperses; Jonah – who has “emotional problems” – finds a place at a school more suited to his needs, family dinners get increasingly wholesome, and Marlo does a passable Stevie Nicks impression at a child’s birthday party. And then comes the twist: after a bender in Brooklyn with Tully, a sleep-deprived Marlo, drunk at the wheel, drives her car off a bridge and ends up in hospital, and we realise there was nobody else in the car. Her maiden name, we learn, was Tully.
ellauri112.html on line 702: I appreciated the fact that a troubled mom did seek help, I’m just not sure the script needed the plot twist. I didn’t immediately warm to this flick. Actually, I often alternated between exasperation and captivation – and a key plot twist at the end left a sour taste in my mouth, though for petty reasons. Nonetheless, something about it didn’t feel quite right. It took one observation from a friend afterward to allow for the film’s brilliance to bloom in my mind.
ellauri112.html on line 710: In Tully, Marlo starts to see the kind of caretaker she wants to have, and their bondage becomes what keeps her going. As much as Tully turns into a super nanny, the real job she does is help return Marlo to a functioning hole person. With the aid of Tully, Marlo gets her love life back again, gets it each day, and kicks the postpartum depression to the curb. Should kick Drew there too maybe. Tully she cant kick without kicking herself in the ass.
ellauri112.html on line 730: The revelation that Tully is a version of Marlo’s former self removes the possibility of a different life she represented. “I love us,” Marlo’s husband says to her, as she lies in her hospital bed. “I love us too,” she replies. This collective noun is the acceptance of the status quo, just as Tully’s last speech, in which she tells Marlo she should embrace her dull life – “being boring means you’re doing it right” – is an endorsement of the sacrifices society requires of her. The final scene, in which Marlo’s husband helps her make the packed lunches, is bathed in a saccharine glow: learn to love your claustrophobia, it tells women. The nuclear family is the only one worth having.
ellauri112.html on line 783: Anaalis-obsessiiviset tyypit jaxaa nykertää jotain pykälää tai hinkata itseään koko aika puhtaaxi. Pyhistely ja julmat säännöstöt on yxi apinoiden geenilinjoista, joka pitää lauman kurissa ja auttaa välttelemään viruslinkoja. Tämä viimeinen luonnevika on uskontojen ominta reviiriä.
ellauri112.html on line 790: When shall we eat supper? First or last day of the week? This has nothing to do with the Sabbath being changed. I do not believe that it has, but that it is obsolete. The Sabbath is “Saturday”, the 7th day, which I am convinced to be for the rest that Christians will take with the Father (Heb. 4:1-11) and for weekend shopping. I find keeping the Sabbath day is a part of the 10 commands. Exodus says “And He wrote on the tablets the words of the covenant, the Ten Commandments” (Exo. 34:28, also see Deut. 4:13, 9:9, 11). Jeremiah said “Behold, the days are coming, says the LORD, when I will make a new covenant” (Jeremiah 31:31). Look further for Jeremiah said, “not according to the covenant that I made with their fathers”
ellauri112.html on line 792: Not according to which covenant? Jeremiah says the covenant “in the day that I took them by the hand to lead them out of the land of Egypt, My covenant which they broke” (31:32). Again which covenant is this? Exodus says “And He wrote on the tablets the words of the covenant, the Ten Commandments” (Exo. 34:28). Christ’s covenant is “not according to the covenant that I made with their fathers”, but “In that He says, ‘A new covenant,’ He has made the first obsolete. Now what is becoming obsolete and growing old is ready to vanish away” (Heb. 8:13). The Old Covenant of the 10 commands with the Sabbath keeping is obsolete and vanishing away in the 1st century.
ellauri112.html on line 796: If I kept the 7th day as the Sabbath rest, then I’d be “a debtor to keep the whole law”, and then I will “become estranged from Christ” and “fallen from grace” (Gal. 5:3-4). I will not be estranged from Christ and fall from His grace nor will I teach my family nor my congregation family this. Who wants to keep all those 10 plus obsolete paragraphs anyway? Love is all you need.
ellauri112.html on line 820: “God himself provides ‘wine which makes man’s heart glad’ just as He gives ‘food which sustains man’s heart’ (Ps. 104:14.15). He promises His people that, if they will obey Him, He will bless them with an abundance of wine (Deut 7:13, 11:14, Prov. 3:10. etc.). He threatens to withdraw this blessing from them if they disobey His law (Deut. 28:39, 51; Isa. 62:8). The Scriptures clearly teach that God permits His people to enjoy wine and strong drink as a gift from Him. ‘You may spend the money for whatever your heart desires, for oxen, or sheep, or wine, or strong drink, or whatever your heart desires; and there you shall eat in the presence of the Lord your God and rejoice, you and your household’ (Deut. 14:26).
ellauri112.html on line 833: obituary.jpg?maxheight=650" width="20%" />
ellauri112.html on line 885: Second, Timothy obviously suffered from a stomach ailment which required a medicinal remedy. The water in Asia Minor can be very dangerous, hence the young evangelist was encouraged to take “a little wine” along with his water. The sentence is elliptical: “Be no longer a drinker of water [alone], but [with it] take a little wine” (1 Tim. 5:23).
ellauri112.html on line 902: First, on the next page of this web site, we will study a few Bible passages concerning the public worship of God in general. We do so for simple reasons. “All Scripture is given by inspiration of God, and is profitable for doctrine, for reproof, for correction, for instruction in righteousness, that the man of God may be complete, thoroughly equipped for every good work” (2 Timothy 3:16-17, NKJV). Worship is a “good work,” but we are not to lean on our own understanding (Proverbs 3:5). Only the Bible can teach us how to worship God in a manner that pleases Him. All our worship, including our observance of the Lord’s Supper, ought to rest on a biblical foundation.
ellauri112.html on line 916: Since the use of unfermented grape juice is so popular, individual lay Christians may be confronted with grape juice instead of wine when they want to observe the sacrament. Therefore, we must briefly examine the Christian´s duty, whenever he or she is offered grape juice in the Lord´s Supper.
ellauri112.html on line 918: Then, we will answer such objections as are commonly offered to the biblical teaching.
ellauri112.html on line 932: However, only the Bible is inspired and infallible. Only the Bible can be the rule of our faith and practice. Where the Bible is silent, we will seek to be silent as well. Where the Bible speaks, we will seek to yield faithful obedience. Where it contradicts the opinions of men, or the practices of churches, we will say, “To the law and to the testimony! If they do not speak according to this word, it is because there is no light in them” (Isaiah 8:20).
ellauri112.html on line 940: Ford looked round. Ford se obazre.
ellauri115.html on line 149: - 1768
- Tervehdyttyään jonkin verran oleskelee Lyonissa. Kerää kasveja. Viipyy jonkin aikaa Grenoblessa. Käy Chamberyssa "maman"in haudalla. Asettuu johkin asumaan. Solmii lopultakin siviiliavioliiton Theresen kaa.
ellauri115.html on line 156: - 1794
- JJ kaivetaan ylös koiran vierestä ja "siirretään" Pantheoniin. Jakobiinit tykkäsivät sen naziajatuxista.
ellauri115.html on line 392: One night, a drunken mob attacked his house. Rousseau was inside with his mistress, the former scullery maid Thérèse le Vasseur (by whom he had five children that he notoriously abandoned to a foundling hospital), and his beloved dog, Sultan. A shower of stones was thrown at the window. A rock "as big as a head" nearly landed on Rousseau's head, no bed. When a local official finally arrived, he declared, "My God, it's a quarry."
ellauri115.html on line 396: Hume still felt, justly, under-appreciated. The "banks of the Thames", he insisted, were "inhabited by barbarians". There was not one Englishman in 50 "who if he heard I had broke my neck tonight would be sorry". Englishmen disliked him, Hume believed, both for what he was not and for what he was: not a Whig, not a Christian, but definitely a Scot. In England, anti-Scottish prejudice was rife. But his homeland too seemed to reject him. The final humiliation came in June 1763, when the Scottish prime minister, the Earl of Bute, appointed another Scottish historian, William Robertson, to be Historiographer Royal for Scotland.
ellauri115.html on line 398: Hume's friends travelling in France had already told him about his incomparable standing in Parisian society. And the two years he spent in Paris were to be the happiest of his life. He was rapturously embraced there, loaded, in his words, "with civilities". Hume stressed the near-universal judgment on his personality and morals. "What gave me chief pleasure was to find that most of the elogiums bestowed on me, turned on my personal character; my naivety & simplicity of manners, the candour and mildness of my disposition &tc." Indeed, his French admirers gave him the sobriquet Le Bon David, the good David.
ellauri115.html on line 400: The lavish attention paid by women must have come as a pleasant shock to this obese bachelor in his 50s. James Caulfeild (later Lord Charlemont), who'd once described Hume's face as "broad and fat, his mouth wide, and without any other expression than that of imbecility", observed how in Paris, "no lady's toilette was complete without Hume's attendance".
ellauri115.html on line 408: Of course it must have been galling for Hume, hailed in Paris, to be reduced, in the shrewd observation of an intimate Edinburgh friend, William Rouet, Professor of Ecclesiastical and Civil History, to being "the show-er of the lion". The lion stood out in his bizarre Armenian outfit, complete with gown and cap with tassels, and was almost everywhere accompanied by his dog, Sultan. Hume was astounded by the fuss, somewhat meanly putting it down to Rousseau's curiosity value.
ellauri115.html on line 412: Rousseau was already seized with the glimmerings of a plot; he warned his Swiss friends that his letters were being intercepted and his papers in danger. By June, the plot was starkly clear to him in all its ramifications - and at its centre was Hume. On June 23, he rounded on his saviour: "You have badly concealed yourself. I understand you, Sir, and you well know it." And he spelled out the essence of the plot: "You brought me to England, apparently to procure a refuge for me, and in reality to dishonour me. You applied yourself to this noble endeavour with a zeal worthy of your heart and with an art worthy of your talents." Hume was mortified, furious, scared. He appealed to Davenport for support against "the monstrous ingratitude, ferocity, and frenzy of the man".
ellauri115.html on line 429: Moreover, Rousseau advocated the opinion that, insofar as they lead people to virtue, all religions are equally worthy, and that people should therefore conform to the religion in which they have been brought up. This religious indifferentism caused Rousseau and his books to be banned from France and Geneva. He was condemned from the pulpit by the Archbishop of Paris, his books were burned and warrants were issued for his arrest. Former friends such as Jacob Vernes of Geneva could not accept his views, and wrote violent rebuttals.
ellauri115.html on line 486: Samuel Clarke (1675–1729) was the most influential British metaphysician and theologian in the generation between Locke and Berkeley, and only Shaftesbury rivals him in ethics. In all three areas he was very critical of Hobbes, Spinoza, and Toland. Deeply influenced by Newton, Clarke was critical of Descartes’ metaphysics of space and body because of the experimental evidence for Newtonianian doctrines of space, the vacuum, atoms, and attraction and because he believed Descartes’ identifying body with extension and removing final causes from nature had furthered irreligion and had naturally developed into Spinozism.
ellauri115.html on line 579: Eternally noble, historically fair;
ellauri115.html on line 655: Oleta että sokea mies kieltää kuvien olemassaolon koska se ei ole koskaan nähnyt niitä. Mä paan sen käteen mun kikkelin ja saan sen seisomaan Tom of Finland-kuvan avulla joka on mulla piilossa; sokea mies voi tunnustella et nythän se viisari on pydessä. Kerron sille et "Madonnankuva sai sen aikaan.” “Ei sunkaan,” se sanoo, "kikkeli ize on seisomisen syy; seisominen on yhteistä kaikille kaluille". “No näytä sitten mulle sama seisokki muissa kaluissa,” mä vastaan, “tai ainaskin näytä mikä sai sen aikaan tässä kikkelissä.” “Ei pysty” vastaa sokea mies; “liian hapokasta, mut vaikka sä et saa sitä seisomaan käskien, mixun pitää yrittää selittää sitä jollain pornokuvalla, josta mulla ei ole mitään käsitystä? Eikös se olis a case of obscurum per obscurius? Anna mun vielä kokeilla sun kikkeliä, tai muuten mä en usko ezulla on enää koko kalua. Se näyttää pienentyneen kuin pyy maailmanlopun edellä. Mä lyön vetoa etmä saan sen seisomaan käsipelillä ilman mitään kuvia. Se on muuten aika hassun näkönen jäykkänä."
ellauri115.html on line 689: Vois luulla kärsimättömien miesten valituxista että Jumala on velkaa niille palkkion ennenkuin työ on edes tehty ja hyväxytty, ezen pitäis antaa miehuudesta förskottia. Voi ei! Ollaan ensin hyviä, onni tulee perässä pienessä lankakerässä. Ei vaadita Nobelin palkintoa ennenkuin ollaan voitettu se, eikä vaadita sitä ennenkuin tää työ on lopussa. [Ai vittu, sitä ei myönnetä postuumisti. No kai siellä kuonpuoleisessa on joku vastaava kunnianosoitus.] “Me ei kruunata voittajia vedonlyöntilistoissa," sanoo Plutarkhos, "vaan vasta kun juoxu on lopussa." Sitäpaizi voitto ei ole tärkeintä, vaan hieno palkinto.
ellauri115.html on line 705: Jumala on intelligentti, mutta miten älykäs? Mies on älykäs kun se järkeilee, mut Korkeimman Tiedustelijan ei tarvize järkeillä; ei sillä ole premissejä eikä johtopäätöxiä, ei sillä ole edes lauseita. [Sillä on vaan yxittäisiä sanoja.] Korkein tiedustelija on kokonaan intuitiivinen, se näkee mitä on ja mitä pitäis olla; kaikki totuudet on sille 1 ja sama, kuten kaikki paikat on vaan 1 paikka ja koko aika vaan 1 sekuntti. Miehen voima käyttää keinoja kuten Viagraa, jumalan voima on omavoimainen. Kirkas valo jo kävelyvauhdissa. Jumala voi koska se tahtoo; sen tahto on sen haba. Jumala on hyvä; tää on varma nakki; mutta mies löytää onnensa oman tiiminsä menestyxessä. Jumalan onni on järjestyxenrakkaus, se on anaalis-obsessiivinen psykopaatti. Sillä järjestyxellä se pitää yllä olevaa, ja yhdistää osia toisiinsa kuin leegoja. Jumala vaan on; tästä mä oon varma. God is just, eli jumala vaan on. Ich bin nur. Se seuraa sen hyvyydestä [vai oliko se toisinpäin?]; miehen vääryys ei ole Jumalan työtä, vaan sen omaa; se moraalinen oikeus joka on filosofien tavallinen moite Sallimuxelle on mulle todistus sen olemassaolosta. Mutta miehen oikeus on että jokainen saa ansionsa mukaan; Jumalan oikeus muodostuu että se vaatii meiltä tiliä siitä mitä se on meille antanut.
ellauri115.html on line 834: A specimen of Fontaine's mal à propos remarks. A brother of Boileau, who was a doctor of the Sorbonne, pronounced one day, before La Fontaine and two or three others, a long eulogy upon St. Augustine. The fabulist, whose mind had been running upon a very different author, and who had but little idea of the distinction to be observed between writers on sacred and profane subjects, interrupted the doctor to ask whether he thought St. Augustine a greater genius than Rabelais. The theologian contented himself with the reply, “Take care, M. La Fontaine, you have put on your stockings the wrong side out!” Sepalus on persepuolella.
ellauri115.html on line 847: Se on siis samaa kärpässarjaa kuin Hobitin kirja, Eeditin kirja, Esterin perse, Siirakin kirja, Makaberilaiset, Susanna, A-sarjan rukous, 3 miehen kiitoslaulu kirkkoveneessä, Kaunotar ja hirviä. Viisaat kirkkoisät huomasivat että niistä sepustuxista tulee niille enemmänkin harmia kuin iloa, ja siirsivät ne liitteisiin.
ellauri115.html on line 938: He moved to Poland, where he married the daughter of a leading member of the Polish Brethren, the anti-trinitarian minority, or ecclesia minor. In 1565, it had split from the Calvinist Reformed Church in Poland. Sozzini never joined the ecclesia minor, but he was influential in reconciling several controversies among the Brethren: on conscientious objection, on prayer to Christ, and on the virgin birth. Fausto persuaded many in the Polish Brethren who were formerly Arian, such as Marcin Czechowic, to adopt his uncle Lelio's views.
ellauri115.html on line 975: Alun perin termiä käytti Jean-Jacques Rousseau teoksessaan Yhteiskuntasopimuksesta. Yhteiskuntasopimuksen perusidean mukaista valtioihannetta kannattivat häntä ennen kuitenkin jo Thomas Hobbes, John Locke ja Hugo Grotius. 1900-luvulla yhteiskuntasopimusperinnettä on edustanut John Rawls. Se tietämättömyyden pyllyverhokaveri. Hyvin ällö ja epis oikispää.
ellauri115.html on line 978: 2010-luvulla yhteiskuntasopimusta on käytetty Suomessa myös työmarkkinapoliittisena käsitteenä, eli heikkenevän työväenliikkeen kyykytyxen astalona. Kikyloikan synonyymina. Nyt sentään G7 ja EU ajaa monikansallisten yritysten verotuxeen jotain rotia. Jos siitäkään nyt mitään tulee. On se kyllä prrkeleestä tää globalisaatio.
ellauri115.html on line 980: Hobbesin ja Locken pointtina oli että keskusvalta teki lopun klaanihommasta ja verikostosta. Siitä pääsi apinoiden kanimainen leviäminen vasta vauhtiin kunnolla. Ravintoverkon huipulla keekoilevan apinan ainoot viholliset on enää taudit syöpäläiset ja kollegat. Virkaveljet saadaan kuriin yhteiskuntasopimuxella.
ellauri115.html on line 1069: Shmuel "Sam" Vaknin (born April 21, 1961) is an Israeli writer and "professor of psychology". He is the author of Malignant Self Love: Narcissism Revisited (1999), was editor-in-chief of political news website Global Politician, and runs a private website about narcissistic personality disorder (NPD). He has also postulated a theory on chronons and time asymmetry which is pure bullshit.
ellauri115.html on line 1123: Robert D. Jänis CM (born 1934) is a Canadian psychologist, known for his research in the field of criminal psychology. He is a psychopath emeritus of the University of British Columbia, where his studies center on psychopathology and psychophysiognomy.
ellauri115.html on line 1134: Hare then returned to Vancouver, British Columbia, shut up as a professional psychopath at the prison's psychologist compartment, where he would stay for 30 years until retirement, the same prison he had previously worked in. He seemed not to change behavior in response to God's punishment because he was a psychopath. He recalls, "I happened to get into a cell that nobody else was sitting in". Hare has said of himself and his wife Averil that the loss of their daughter Cheryl in 2003 "tells an awful lot about who Averil and I are." Averil, his wife, is a prominent social worker in Canada specializing in child abuse.
ellauri115.html on line 1138: Hare also co-authored the bestselling Snakes in Suits: When Psychopaths Go to Work (2006) with organizational psychologist and human resources consultant Paul Babiak, a portrayal of the disruptions caused when psychopaths enter the workplace. The book focuses on what Hare refers to as the "successful psychopath", who can be charming and socially skilled and therefore able to get by in the workplace. This is by contrast with the type of psychopath whose lack of social skills or self-control would cause them to rely on threats and coercion and who would probably not be able to hold down a job for long. Hare would classify himself and Mrs. Hare (jänisemo pyrynä viitaan loikki) as first class psychopaths. Successful vs. unsuccessful bad people.
ellauri115.html on line 1142: Hare's views are recounted with some skepticism in the 2011 bestseller The Psychopath Test by British investigative journalist Jon Ronson, to which Hare has responded. Hare served as a high functioning sociopath for Jacob M. Appel's Mask of Sanity (2017), a novel source of income.
ellauri115.html on line 1159: Leibniz on yxi tyypeistä jonka kohalla erikielisissä wikipediasivuissa näkyy hyvin anglosaxien ja muiden länkkäreiden väliset kateelliset välit ja kilpaileva nurkkakuntaisuus. Nyt kun Ranskasta tulee EUn isäntämaa ne ottaa Ranskan virallisesti ykköskielexi. Hyvä Ranska! Ulos globalisoitu transatlantic English brittilössin perässä. Ei niitä kaivata. Toivottavasti tää on lännen hajaannuxen alkua.
ellauri115.html on line 1172: A: The answer to this is very simple. Utilitarianism is concerned only with the volume of pleasure and pain, and Nietzsche says in so many words that as soon as you even enter into this kind of thinking, you are already deep into the territory of nihilism. It is passive; concerned with maintenance, not construction; aloof or indifferent to meaning, something to justify the effort in the first place, even when it is successful, let alone when it isn’t. It is the staid, kindly, sober—not to say, the British—version of the same imbecilic nihilism that was prevailing on the continent in the same era. Mill did not understand the difference between pleasure and (actual) happiness, between pain and suffering, between real (spiritual) slavery and freedom.
ellauri117.html on line 49: Ce recueil de réflexions et d’observations, sans ordre et presque sans suite, fut commencé pour complaire à une bonne mère qui sait penser. Je n’avais d’abord projeté qu’un mémoire de quelques pages; mon sujet m’entraînant malgré moi, ce mémoire devint insensiblement une espèce d’ouvrage trop gros, sans doute, pour ce qu’il contient, mais trop petit pour la matière qu’il traite. J’ai balancé longtemps à le publier; et souvent il m’a fait sentir, en y travaillant, qu’il ne suffit pas d’avoir écrit quelques brochures pour savoir composer un livre. Après de vains efforts pour mieux faire, je crois devoir le donner tel qu’il est, jugeant qu’il importe de tourner l’attention publique de ce côté-là; et que, quand mes idées seraient mauvaises, si j’en fais naître de bonnes à d’autres, je n’aurai pastout à fait perdu mon temps. Un homme qui, de sa retraite, jette ses feuilles dans le public, sans prôneurs, sans parti qui les défende, sans savoir même ce qu’on en pense ou ce qu’on en dit, ne doit pas craindre que, s’il se trompe, on admette ses erreurs sans examen.
ellauri117.html on line 60: Se, joka yhteiskuntajärjestyksen alaisena eläen tahtoo pysyttää etusijalla luonnolliset tunteensa, ei tiedä, mitä tahtoo. Ollen alati sisäisen ristiriidan valloissa hän ei koskaan ole oleva oikea apina eikä oikea kansalainen; hän ei ole kykenevä itselleen eikä muille hyvää aikaansaamaan. Hänestä on tuleva tuollainen tavallinen nykyaikaisilmiö, ranskalainen, englantilainen, poroporvari: sanalla sanoen ei schweizari, ei siis yhtään mitään. Vain Toblerone-patukka on jotaan.
ellauri117.html on line 74: Kasvatuksemme alkaa samalla hetkellä kuin elämämme; ensimäinen opettajamme on imettäjämme. Sanalla kasvatus (educatio) olikin vanhaan aikaan toinen merkitys, kuin minkä me sille annamme; se merkitsi lapsenhoitoa. Educit obstetrix, sanoo Varro; educat nutrix, instituit paedagogus, docet magister. Siis kasvatus, ohjaus ja opetus ovat kolme tarkoitukseltaan yhtä erilaista seikkaa kuin lastenhoitajatar, leikinohjaaja ja opettaja. Mutta näitä erotuksia on väärin käsitelty; saavuttaakseen hyvän kasvatuksen lapsen tulee seurata ainoastaan leikinohjaajaa.
ellauri117.html on line 166: 1912 lernte er in Max Brods Haus Felice Bauer kennen, die die erste große Liebe seine ns werden sollte und mit der er zweimal insgeheim verlobt war, Franz war zu jener Zeit 29 Jahre alt. In den folgenden fünf Jahren bildete Felice das Zentrum seines Lebens, von dem er sich im ständigen Wechsel angezogen und wieder abgestoßen fühlte. Er verwirrte sie mit einer Flut selbstquälerischer Briefe. Diese ambivalente, heftigen Gefühlsschwankungen unterworfene Romanze beflügelte den Schriftsteller in Kafka, doch seine Unentschlossenheit, in welche Richtung sich ihre Beziehung entwickeln sollte, frustrierte Felice. Wie Koalas Onkel, aufzählte der kleine Jude die Vorzüge und Nachteile einer Ehe. Schließlich schickte sie ihre Freundin Grete Bloch, um Kafka nach seinen Absichten zu fragen. Mit der Zeit wurde Grete die Vertraute des Schriftstellers, und Felice hegte den Verdacht, daß dabei sein Fühler tiefer gegangen war, als sie zugeben wollten. Das Verhältnis zwischen Franz und Felice kühlte mehr und mehr ab. Doch 1916 verbrachten sie gemeinsam einen zehntägigen Urlaub. Sie wohnten in zwei neben einanderliegenden Zimmern und spielten offensichtlich Mann und Frau. Wieder beschlossen sie zu heiraten, doch 1917 - ungefähr zur gleichen Zeit, als seine Tuberkulose erkannt wurde - löste Kafka die Verlobung wieder. Was für ein Mistkäfer.
ellauri117.html on line 168: 1919 begegnete er während eines Aufenthalts in einer Pension in der Nähe von Prag Julie Wohryzek, der Tochter eines tschechischen Schuhmachers. Sie wurde seine zweite Verlobte. Im Gegensatz zu Felice hatte Julies Familie weder Besitz noch Ansehen, un Kafkas Vater bemerkte mit beißendem Spott, daß sein Sohn wohl besser beraten wäre, wenn er ein Bordell besuchen würde. Die etwa dreißig Jahre alte Julie war eine unbekümmerte, unge gebildete Frohnatur. Kafka sah in ihr die ideale Partnerin für eine zuträgliche, vernünftige Ehe. Doch auch diese Verlobung wurde aufgelöst - angeblich weil das Paar das Loch nicht finden konnte, in Wahrheit eine der zwanghaften Befürchtungen, die Frans Beziehungen zu Frauen stets überschatteten.
ellauri117.html on line 170: In 1920, als er sich wieder auf einer Erholungskur in Südtirol befand, begann er einer Frau zu schreiben, die ihm geistig ebenbürtig war. Sie hieß Milena Jesenská-Polak, war 24 Jahre alt, verheiratet und keine Jüdin. Sie war eine emanzipierte Frau, Künstlerin und Intellektuelle, die Kafka gebeten hatte, einige seiner Werke ins Tschechische übersetzen zu dürfen. Sie vergötterte Kafka als Schriftsteller und konnte sich in seine seelische Welt einfühlen, denn auch sie hatte unter einem tyrannischen Vater zu leiden gehabt. Kafka bot ihr finanzielle Unterstützung an, wenn sie ihren Ehemann verließe. Vor ihrer endgültigen Entscheidung verbrachten die beiden jedoch vier Tage lang «Probeflitterwochen». Nach ihrer Rückkehr schlug Milena das Angebot aus. Ihr war schnell klargeworden, was es bedeutete, mit einem dem Tod geweihten
ellauri117.html on line 226: `Well -- yes -- probably.'
ellauri117.html on line 239: Gerald fastened the door and pushed the furniture aside. The room was large, there was plenty of space, it was thickly carpeted. Then he quickly threw off his clothes, and waited for Birkin. The latter, white and thin, came over to him. Birkin was more a presence than a visible object, Gerald was aware of him completely, but not really visually. Whereas Gerald himself was concrete and noticeable, a piece of pure final substance.
ellauri117.html on line 328: `You are very fine,' said Birkin, looking at the full robe.
ellauri117.html on line 338: Birkin laughed. He was looking at the handsome figure of the other man, blond and comely in the rich robe, and he was half thinking of the difference between it and himself -- so different; as far, perhaps, apart as man from woman, yet in another direction. But really it was Ursula, it was the woman who was gaining ascendance over Birkin´s being, at this moment. Gerald was becoming limp again, lapsing out of him.
ellauri117.html on line 386: Calmly nod while game director explains to you why scene that explains game’s story has been cut. Also why player’s companion character is no longer a woman but a robot.
ellauri117.html on line 524: Jokos mä olen taulukoinut kynäilijöiden ulkonäön, pituuden ja paxuuden sekä lompakoiden koon? Sehän on tärkeä selittävä näkökohta arvioitaessa niiden teoxia. Vähän tuntuu kun tästä olis ollutkin jo puhetta, mutta missä? Jossain tarkasteltiin kait sitä, onko ne rahallisesti nousukkaita (snobeja) vaiko laskukkaita (dändejä). Mieskirjailijoiden penismitat olis myös kiva detalji, jos ne on tiedossa. (Hemingwaulta ja Kultahatulta ne on. Goethen kohdalla ne ei liene luotettavia, ize raportoituja.)
ellauri117.html on line 591: Yhteiskuntafilosofiassaan Locke kehitti vaihtoehdon Hobbesin luonnontila-ajatukselle ja esitti omana yhteiskuntasopimusteorianaan, että hallinto voi olla oikeutettu vain, jos se saa hallittavien "hiljaisen suostumuksen" eli suojelee omistavan luokan elämän, vapauden ja omaisuuden luonnollisia oikeuksia. Jos tällaista suostumusta ei ollut annettu, "kansalaisilla" oli oikeus kapinaan. Oikeus schmoikeus, ei ole muuta oikeutta kuin vahvemman oikeus. Vittuako Jussi sä olet siitä mitään sanomaan.
ellauri117.html on line 608: Maxa-Shaftesburyn (1621-1683) pojanpoika, 3. Earl of Shaftesbury (1671—1713) oli mieltä että: Hobbes had set the agenda of British moral philosophy (a search for the grounding of universal moral principles), and Locke had established its method (empiricism). Shaftesbury’s important contribution was to focus that agenda by showing what a satisfactory response to Hobbes might look like but without giving up too much of Locke’s method. Shaftesbury showed the British moralists that if we think of moral goodness as analogous to beauty, then (even within a broadly empiricist framework) it is still possible for moral goodness to be non-arbitrarily grounded in objective features of the world and for the moral agent to be attracted to virtue for its own sake, not merely out of self-interest. In Shaftesbury’s aesthetic language, the state of having the morally correct motives is the state of being “morally beautiful,” and the state of approving the morally correct motives upon reflection is the state of having “good moral taste.” Shaftesbury argues that the morally correct motives which constitute moral beauty turn out to be those motives which are aimed at the good of one’s society as a whole. This good is understood teleologically. Furthermore Shaftesbury argues that both the ability to know the good of one’s society and the reflective approval of the motivation toward this good are innate capacities which must nevertheless be developed by proper socialization.
ellauri117.html on line 616: Noihin aikoihin Locke kirjoitti, todennäköisesti Shaftesburyn yllytyksestä, suurimman osan teoksestaan Two Treatises of Government, joka julkaistiin vuonna 1689. Locke halusi puolustaa teoksellaan vuoden 1688 mainiota vallankumousta, mutta samalla vastustaa Sir Robert Filmerin ja Thomas Hobbesin absolutistista poliittista filosofiaa. Locke luettiin vaikutusvaltaisen whig-puolueen puolelle, ja hänen ajatuksensa luonnonoikeudesta ja hallinnosta olivat kumouksellisia tuon ajan Englannissa. Toryt oli kunkun ja pappien ja maanomistajien puolue, whigit oli kauppaporvareita ja dissenttereitä. Muilla ei ollut maan asioihin mitään sanomista.
ellauri118.html on line 363: These hot nights nobody can sleep well. Näinä kuumina öinä kukaan ei nuku hyvin.
ellauri118.html on line 390: Bel-tenebros oli Amadixen peitenimi sekobolzina. Komee pimee. Miraflores oli joku paikka joka on mainittu enemmän kuin kerran. Joo se oli se paikka kolmen viemäriputken lähellä jossa Amadis pyrki Orianan hilloviivalle. Taisi päästäkin? "por ganar la gloria de la demanda en la prueva de bien amar". Se on myös joku kunta Columbiassa, se on missä Keiko Fujimorin häitä vietettiin, ja se on ylellinen 5 tähden useasti palkittu Miraflores, joka sijaitsee Costa del Solilla Espanjassa Marbellan ja Fuengirolan puolivälissä. Aurinkorannikko sopii hyvin ympärivuotiseen lomailuun aurinkoisen ja lämpimän ilmaston ansiosta. Costa del Sol tunnetaan myös nimellä Costa del Golf, lukuisien golfkenttien ansiosta. Helkutti aurinkoa tässä enää kaivataan. Ja mikä hemmetti se on että termiittiapinan on pakko tehdä kaikesta monokulttuuria. Mirafiores indeed. Mä kazon lupiininkukkia Rauhixen mäellä ja remmon niitä irti maasta. Se on haitallinen vieraslaji, matukukka. Se tappaa kotimaiset lajit ja tekee täkäläiset kimalaiset mahoixi. Sellaista symbolismia.
ellauri118.html on line 397: Pierre Ambroise François Choderlos de Laclos [ʃɔdɛʁlo də laklo] (18. lokakuuta 1741 Amiens, Ranska – 5. syyskuuta 1803 Taranto, Italia) oli ranskalainen upseeri, liikemies, diplomaatti ja kirjailija. Hänet tunnetaan erityisesti kirjeromaanistaan Vaarallisia suhteita (alkuteos Les liaisons dangereuses), joka ilmestyi vuonna 1782. Hän julkaisi myös runokokoelman, sovitti Madame Riccobonin romaanin Histoire d’Ernestine oopperalibretoksi sekä julkaisi yhteiskunnallisen tutkielman naisten kouluttamisesta. Taas yx tällänen Fenelon.
ellauri118.html on line 399: Pierre Ambroise François Choderlos de Laclos syntyi Amiensissa 1741. Hän sai tykistöupseerin koulutuksen, ja hänet nimitettiin 1761 tykistöluutnantiksi. Hän palveli useilla paikkakunnilla, kuten Strasbourgissa ja Grenoblessa. Hän kirjoitteli myös näihin aikoihin eroottisia tarinoita lehtiin. Ura upseerina ei ollut kovin menestyksekäs. Ollessaan komennettuna Biskajanlahdella de Laclos ilmoitti ystävilleen, että kirjoittaa vielä jotain todella epätavallista ja huomiota herättävää ja että se muistetaan vielä pitkään hänen jälkeensä. Ennustus toteutui Vaarallisia suhteita -teoksen myötä.
ellauri118.html on line 432: Monika Fludernik (1957-) ist´ne österreichische Flugwirtin, Amerikanistin und Literaturwissenschaftlerin. Fludernik leistete wichtige Beiträge zur Erzähltheorie. Die neuere Erzähltheorie wurde ab 1915 in Ansätzen vom Russischen Formalismus entwickelt und vom Strukturalismus seit den 1950er Jahren weiter ausgearbeitet, wobei Tzvetan Todorov zu den wichtigsten Vermittlern der formalistischen Ansätze in Frankreich gehörte. Der hier entwickelte strukturalistische Ansatz – mit späteren Ergänzungen – ist bis heute maßgeblich, es gab jedoch nie eine einheitliche strukturalistische Erzähltheorie. Wichtige Theoretiker der Narratologie sind Gérard Genette, Claude Lévi-Strauss, Roland Barthes, Roman Jakobson und Paul Ricœur. Die strukturelle (formalistische) Erzähltheorie wird oft durch interdisziplinäre Ansätze ergänzt, so durch die Semiotik ergänzt, wozu insbesondere Juri Lotman beigetragen hat. Im deutschen Sprachraum war Franz Karl Stanzel der erste Vertreter der Erzähltheorie.
ellauri118.html on line 442: Jakobsonin miälestä Majakovski oli posetiivari, Palsternak taas pessimisti, ja tää näkyy Romanin mukaan siitä että Pasternakilla on paljon metonymiaa. Kirjoittiko Palsternakka runojakin? Juu, vaikka niiden suosio on laskenut kuin lehmän häntä (fig .1).
ellauri118.html on line 448: Lännessä se tunnetaan parhaiten monumentaalisesta ja traagisesta Neuvostoliittoa käsittelevästä romaanista Tohtori Živago, joka julkaistiin ensimmäisen kerran Italiassa vuonna 1957, joka tunnetaan parhaiten samannimisestä osin Suomessakin kuvatusta monumentaalisesta filmistä 1965, jossa näyttelivät sukuelimiään leukava ebyktiläinen Omar Sharif ja väkäleuka brittiämmä Agatha Christie. Christie nai pitkään ällöä Warren Beattya josta Carly Simon teki laulelman You're So Vain. Tuottaja Albert R. Broccoli hylkäsi hänet sillä perusteella, että hänen rintansa olivat liian pienet. Kalut joita voi näyttää - ja käyttää. Omar kuoli 2015 Kairossa Alzheimeriin. Agatha kai elää vielä. Noobeli Pasternakille oli poliittinen veto länkkäreiltä.
ellauri118.html on line 454: Hän joutui neuvostoliittolaisten viranomaisten epäsuosioon 1930- ja 1940-luvulla. Hänen onnistui kuitenkin välttää vankileirit (gulagit), vaikka hän oli syytettynä subjektiivisuudesta ja estetismistä. Hämärän peittoon on jäänyt syy, miksi Stalin suosi häntä. [Ehkä Josif tykkäsi sen runoista. Sisialismi-runossa se sanoo hyvän sanan Gruusiasta.] Hän ansaitsi elantonsa kääntämällä gruusialaisia klassikoita, joista Stalin piti. Tarinan mukaan Stalin yliviivasi Pasternakin nimen pidätettävien luettelosta suurten puhdistusten aikana sanoen ”Älkää koskeko tähän pilvissä kulkijaan”.[lähde? Käyttikö Stalin sanaa nefelobaatti?] Poliittisten runojen sijasta Pasternak kirjoitti henkilökohtaisia runoja, mikä viranomaisten silmissä oli poliittinen kannanotto.
ellauri118.html on line 456: Pasternakille myönnettiin Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinto vuonna 1958, mutta hän joutui luopumaan palkinnon vastaanottamisesta, koska ei olisi voinut palata takaisin Tukholmasta Neuvostoliittoon, mikäli hän matkustaisi Ruotsiin vastaanottamaan palkinnon. Literaturnaja gazeta tuomitsi palkinnon myöntämisen Pasternakille vihamieliseksi teoksi Neuvostoliittoa kohtaan. Niinkuin olikin. Pasternak erotettiin myös Neuvostoliiton kirjailijaliitosta viisi päivää Nobel-palkinnon myöntämisen jälkeen.
ellauri118.html on line 558: Ensimmäinen style indirect librestä ranskan kielessä kirjoittanut tutkija Charles Bally nimittääkin ”style indirect librea” kaunokirjalliseksi ajattelun figuuriksi (ei ”puheen esittämiseksi”), ”figure de pensée” (Bally 1914, 407). Ei ole enää kyse kieliopillisesta muodosta, vaan kirjallisesta ajattelun kuviosta. Kuvion ymmärrän tapana saadaan aikaan ja ilmaista jokin esitys, joka ei noudata objektiivista todellisuutta eikä kielitieteellistä
ellauri118.html on line 561: Charles-Louis Bally (4. helmikuuta 1865 Geneve – 10. huhtikuuta 1947 Geneve) oli sveitsiläinen kielitieteilijä. Nykyään Bally muistetaan ehkä parhaiten Bally-kengistä ja siitä, että hän toimitti yhdessä kollegansa Albert Sechehayen kanssa opettajansa Ferdinand de Saussuren postuumin kirjan Cours de linguistique générale, mutta 1920–1930-luvulla hän oli eräs keskeisimpiä eurooppalaisen kielitieteellisen strukturalismin edustajia yhdessä Roman Jakobsonin, Nikolai Trubetzkoyn ja Louis Hjelmslevin kanssa.
ellauri118.html on line 699: Her loose thin Robes, through which appear Sen löysä alushame, minkä läpi näky
ellauri118.html on line 738: That should the Nobler Part inflame, Jonka pitäsi tulehduttaa jalo ruumiinosa,
ellauri118.html on line 803: Yhtä paljon huomiota eivät herättäneet hänen kaksi viimeistä romaaniaan Almahide, ou l´esclave reine (8 osaa, 1660) ja Mathilde d’Aguilar, histoire espagnole (1667). Kaikki kertomukset ovat avainromaaneja, jotka historian puettuna kuvaavat Ranskan hovin elämää ja tapoja ja joista vieraiden nimien alta löytyy useita ajankohdan tunnetuimpia henkilöitä, kuten Condé (Cyrus), Longuevillen herttuatar (Mandane), Ruotsin kuningatar Kristina (Cleobuline) ja kirjailijatar itse (Sapho).
ellauri118.html on line 811: Résumé: L’histoire se déroule dans un cadre spatio-temporel historique, entre les mois d´octobre 1558 et de novembre 1559, à la cour du roi Henri II, puis de son successeur François II.
ellauri118.html on line 834: Her father belonged to the lesser nobility, and was for awhile governor of Pontoise, and later of Havre. Her mother was sprung from an ancient family of Provence, among whom, says Auger, literary talent had long been a heritage; but the mother herself — if we are to believe Cardinal de Retz, but why should we believe that fuckhead — possessed no talent save that of intrigue. Well that's half of a novelist's job according to narratologists.
ellauri118.html on line 860: Certain critics have endeavored to trace the character of Mme. de La Fayette in that of the Princess of Clèves, of M. de La Rochefoucauld in that of M. de Nemours; but too strict an autobiographical interpretation destroys the charm of the story.
ellauri118.html on line 893: Isebel oli foinikialainen prinsessa, Tyyroksen kuningas Ithobaal I:n tytär, joka nai kuningas Ahabin. Vanhassa Testamentissa tätä syytetään Ahabin kääntämisestä pois oikeasta Jumalasta ja hänen ohjaamisestaan palvomaan omaa jumalaansa, Baalia.
ellauri118.html on line 903: »Sinä olet myynyt itsesi tekemään sitä, mikä on pahaa Herran silmissä. Sen tähden Herra sanoo näin: ”Minä saatan sinut onnettomuuteen. Minä lakaisen sinut pois ja hävitän Israelista miespuoliset jälkeläisesi, niin suuret kuin pienetkin. Minä teen sinun suvullesi niin kuin tein Jerobeamin, Nebatin pojan, suvulle ja Baesan, Ahian pojan, suvulle. Tämän teen siksi, että olet herättänyt minun vihani ja johdattanut Israelin tekemään syntiä. Missä koirat nuoleksivat Nabotin verta, siellä ne nuoleksivat sinunkin vertasi ja portot peseytyvät siinä! Ja koirat ovat syövä Isebelin Jisreelin vainioilla! Sen Ahabin jälkeläisen, joka kuolee kaupungissa, syövät koirat, ja sen, joka kuolee muurien ulkopuolella, syövät taivaan linnut.”»
ellauri118.html on line 917: Sodan Ahabin suvulle julistanut, Elian Israelin kuninkaaksi rasvaama sotapäällikkö Jeehu, aika jehu, Nimsin poika, surmasi kuninkaan pojan Jooramin jousellaan ja käski vaunusoturinsa Nickin heittää surmatun ruumis (objektivirhe) Nabotin maalle – johon se tiettävästi jäi haaskansyöjien revittäväksi, koska kukaan ei uskaltanut kajota kirotulle maalle heitettyyn ruumiiseen – jolta (vaikka sitä ei suoraan sanotakaan) jo vakiintuneen juutalaisen tavan mukaan ennen hylkäämistä oli riistetty kaikki arvovaatteet ja varusteet:
ellauri118.html on line 948: "I felt like in the novel there's only so much of the dynamic between Serena Joy and Offred that you're going to see, but in a TV show it's going to go on and on and on hopefully for years. The element that was missing for me was the direct competition between the two women," Miller said. I felt that it was a more active dynamic if Serena Joy felt like this person was usurping her role not only as the reproductive object of the house but gradually taking away the wifely duties, the intimate duties, the romantic, sexual duties." Mitä romanttista on panossa? Se on romanttista ettei paääse pukille vaikka mieli tekisi.
ellauri118.html on line 972: The show modernizes the setting with references to Uber and Craigslist.
(Mikä vitun Craigslist? Craigslist is an American classified advertisements website with sections devoted to jobs, housing, for sale, items wanted, services, community service, gigs, résumés, and discussion forums. Craig Newmark began the service in 1995 as an email distribution list to friends, featuring local events in the San Francisco Bay. Privately owned company. Property is theft.)
ellauri118.html on line 1024: Arjen Robben jalkapalloilija
ellauri118.html on line 1057: Jalkapallotoimittaja sanoi Hoblassa: maailma olisi parempi paikka ilman somea. Se olisi hurjasti parempi paikka ilman termiittiapinaa.
ellauri118.html on line 1146: Besides a disproportionate number of blacks, the show has another representational problem: a notable absence of fat women among the handmaids.
ellauri118.html on line 1148: There is research suggesting a link between clinical obesity and difficulty conceiving (for example), but fat women are not inherently less fertile, they are just a little harder to penetrate, and have less space for the baby among all the lard.
ellauri118.html on line 1149: The failure to include obese body types in the television adaptation was a major oversight. The Handmaid’s Tale should have done better by fat women.
ellauri118.html on line 1167: Eurydice in Greek mythology, the luckless bride bitten by a snake on her wedding day. Her husband, Orpheus, the famed musician, convinced Hades to let Eurydice return to earth. However, Orpheus disobeyed the strictures of the journey and looked at Eurydice too soon, thus dispatching her back to the abode of the dead forever.
ellauri119.html on line 27: Batman ja Robin
ellauri119.html on line 35: Onko mikään enää pyhää? Saattaa arvella näiden paasausten lukija, jos jaxaa lukea näin pitkälle. Ja vastaus on, kyllä on! Batman ja Robin sarjassa mainitaan ainakin 50 pyhää asiaa.
ellauri119.html on line 48: Primary (pre-Christian) meaning is not possbile to determine, but probably it was "that must be preserved whole or intact, that cannot be transgressed or violated," and connected with Old English hal (see health) and Old High German heil "health, happiness, good luck" (source of the German salutations Sieg Heil, Heil Hitler).
ellauri119.html on line 105: Robin's 20 Weirdest 'Holy Batman' Lines From the TV Show (out of a total of 50)
ellauri119.html on line 110: On the "Batman" TV series, which ran for 120 episodes between 1966 and 1968, Batman's sidekick Robin (played by Burt Ward), was well known for his ever-changing catchphrase. It was an exclamation that would always begin with the word "holy." The second part of the exclamation would always involve something related to what Robin was shouting about in that episode. For example, if there was a bunch of smoke, he might shout "holy smoke!" However, the exclamations often got a lot weirder than that. Get to know the 20 oddest "holy" exclamations Robin said during the series.
ellauri119.html on line 113: In season 2's "Hot Off the Griddle," Catwoman captures Batman and Robin and straps them to two giant aluminum grills, smears them with margarine and places two giant magnifying glasses above them, with the intent to roast them with the hot sun. Robin shouts, "Holy Oleo!" to which Catwoman humorously retorts, "I didn't know you could yodel."
ellauri119.html on line 119: In the Season 2 episode "The Puzzles are Coming," the Puzzler traps Batman and Robin aboard a hot air balloon rigged to release its basket at 20,000 feet in the air. Robin remarks, "Holy Graf Zeppelin," a reference to the popular German passenger zeppelin of that name, the LZ 127 Graf Zeppelin. Just "zeppelin" probably would have done the trick, Boy Wonder!
ellauri119.html on line 123: When you realize that Robin is referencing a telecommunications company that was founded as International Telephone & Telegraph in this season two episode, you know the reference is an outdated one. IT&T got out of the telecommunications game in 1986. It has been reformed a number of times into its current state, ITT Corporation. Amusingly, at the time Robin made the reference, IT&T and ABC (which aired "Batman") nearly merged with each other.
ellauri119.html on line 126: In the season two episode "The Devil's Fingers," the evil piano player Chandell (played by Liberace), tries to kill Batman and Robin by feeding them into a machine that punches out the cards for pianolas, or player pianos, which most of the world is now long unfamiliar with.
ellauri119.html on line 130: In the season one episode "Ma Parker," Batman and Robin are trapped in electric chairs. Robin shouts out a reference to a device that controls electrical current with variable resistance. However, said device is no longer called a rheostat. It is now referred to as a potentiometer.
ellauri119.html on line 133: Tintinnabulation means the ringing or sound of bells. However, you don't often hear this word used, let alone as an exclamation like Robin's!
ellauri119.html on line 137: In season two's "Hot off the Griddle," Catwoman captures Batman and Robin in a room where the floor is red hot. They hop up and down while trying to figure out a plan and Robin shouts out "holy bunions!" Just the sight of the two of them hopping up and down while Robin is shouting out nonsense is delightful.
ellauri119.html on line 141: In the season one episode "Not Yet, He Ain't," Batman and Robin go back to the Batcave to relax with some nice cool milk after surviving an attempt on their lives by the Penguin. What's to love about this exclamation is that Robin is so enraged and yet he's carrying a glass of milk and it just looks adorable instead.
ellauri119.html on line 145: In the season two episode "Batman's satisfaction," Batman notices that three distinct letters are missing from a bowl of alphabet soup. Robin is so impressed with Batman's mental acuity that he lets him know it via his "holy uncanny photographic mental processes" statement.
ellauri119.html on line 148: In the season one episode "The Londinium Larcenies," Lady Prudence remarks to Robin that she received an MS in finishing school. He wonders what an MS is, and she says that it is a Mistresses of Shoplifting, to which Robin remarks "holy contributing to the delinquency of minors!"
ellauri119.html on line 152: In the season three episode "Nora Clavicle and the Ladies' Crime Club," Batman, Robin, and Batgirl are forced to intertwine themselves into a giant human knot. Robin responds to this idea by referencing the instructions to basic stitch patterns.
ellauri119.html on line 156: In the season one episode "When the Bookworm Turns," the evil Bookworm's Gal Friday is named Lydia. Batman and Robin discover her tied up and left behind by the Bookworm. Robin's response when he sees her is to shout, "holy Cinderella!" Which, of course, has nothing to do with the situation at hand at all. Or perhaps Batman read Robin a different "Cinderella" than others. Suomalainen Tuhkimo oli miespuolinen. Varmaan Batman luki sitä pikku homopetterille.
ellauri119.html on line 160: In the season one episode "True or False Face," when Batman and Robin figure out that False Face's next robbery target is the Ladd Armored Car Company, Robin shouts out "holy bouncy boilerplate!" Yes, you are correct. That does, indeed, not make any sense.
ellauri119.html on line 164: Now we reach the point in the countdown where Robin references obscure figures from history! Here, while playing chess with Batman in their secret identities of Dick Grayson and Bruce Wayne, Dick remarks "holy Reshevsky!" This is a reference to the great Polish-born American chess grandmaster of the early 20th century Samuel Reshevsky.
ellauri119.html on line 168: During another one of their piano-related misadventures, Robin name-checks another Polish great, the famous pianist (and later Prime Minister of Poland), Ignacy Jan Paderewski.
ellauri119.html on line 172: In the season three episode "Louie the Lilac," the villain of that same name tries to feed Batman and Robin to his man-eating lilacs. Robin then name-checks the noted pioneer in the field of agricultural science in the late 19th Century (and early 20th Century), the botanist Luther Burbank. Because what kid watching "Batman" doesn't know who Luther Burbank is, right?
ellauri119.html on line 176: Referencing d'Artagnan, one of the famed Musketeers of Alexandre Dumas' classic novel, "The Three Musketeers," might not sound like all that weird of a reference for Robin to make. However, it ranks this high because it is actually a reference to Catwoman having just shot Robin and Batman with tranquilizer darts.
ellauri119.html on line 184: In the season one episode "Zelda the Great," Batman is about to capture a magician after she stole some priceless jewelry, but she escapes using sleight-of-hand. Robin is right after Batman and remarks "holy hole in a doughnut!" The words make no sense in this situation. Oddly enough, a track on the "Batman" soundtrack was titled "Holy Hole in a Doughnut." Made more sense to Robin than you'd think.
ellauri119.html on line 188: It only took the entire run of the series, but in literally the last episode of the show, season three's "Minerva, Mayhem, and Millionaires," we got the most amazing Robin exclamation ever. There's a real chance that this was just so perfect that the producers realized that there was nowhere else to go after this, so they just canceled the show.
ellauri119.html on line 192: Batman and Robin travel to the spa, where they are escorted by her goons, leading to the following amazing exchange:
ellauri119.html on line 196: Robin: Persimmon Pressurizer? Holy astringent plum-like fruit!
ellauri119.html on line 197: Batman: Only astringent until ripe, Robin.
ellauri119.html on line 266: Kun joku juttu on oikein hämärää, sitä voi hämmentää lisää vielä hämärämmällä selityxellä. Obscurum per obscurius. Jos se ei riitä voi sanoa että se on mysteeri. Credo quia absurdum. Kaadu tai mä kaadan sut. Sä uskot tän tai sä itket ja uskot.
ellauri119.html on line 336: God, the Cause of all, is one. This does not mean one as in one of a pair, nor one like a species (which encompasses many individuals), nor one as in an object that is made up of many elements, nor as a single simple object that is infinitely divisible. Rather, God is a unity unlike any other possible unity. This is referred to in the Torah (Deuteronomy 6:4): "Hear Israel, the Lord is our God, the Lord is one."
ellauri119.html on line 385: Define god? In monotheistic thought, God is defined as the supreme being, creator, and principal object of faith. God is usually conceived of as being omnipotent, omniscient, omnipresent and omnibenevolent as well as having an eternal and necessary existence. A good definition because it is creative, too bad that's no longer allowed by the modern logicians. Existence and uniqueness must be proven separately. Damn them to hell!
ellauri119.html on line 400: Paul Matthews van Buren (April 20, 1924 – June 18, 1998) was a Christian theologian and author. An ordained Episcopal priest, he was a Professor of religion at Temple University, Philadelphia for 22 years. He was a Director [NYT obituary says "Associate"] of the Center of Ethics and Religious Pluralism at the Shalom Hartman Institute in Jerusalem. Van Buren was born and raised in Norfolk, Virginia. During World War II, he had served in the United States Coast Guard. He graduated with a bachelor´s degree in government from Harvard College in 1948. A professor at Temple University, he was considered a leader of the "Death of God" school or movement, although he himself rejected that name for the movement as a "journalistic invention," and considered himself an exponent of "Secular Christianity." He died of cancer on June 18, 1998 at age 74.
ellauri119.html on line 422: Love is considered to be both positive and negative, with its virtue representing human kindness, compassion, and affection, as "the unselfish loyal and benevolent concern for the good of another" and its vice representing human moral flaw, akin to vanity, selfishness, amour-propre, and egotism, as potentially leading people into a type of mania, obsessiveness or codependency. It may also describe compassionate and affectionate actions towards other humans, one's self or animals. In its various forms, love acts as a major facilitator of interpersonal relationships and, owing to its central psychological importance, is one of the most common themes in the creative arts. Love has been postulated to be a function that keeps human beings together against menaces and to facilitate the continuation of the species.
ellauri119.html on line 430: In addition to cross-cultural differences in understanding love, ideas about love have also changed greatly over time. Some historians date modern conceptions of romantic love to courtly Europe during or after the Middle Ages, although the prior existence of romantic attachments is attested by ancient love poetry. The complex and abstract nature of love often reduces discourse of love to a thought-terminating cliché. Several common proverbs regard love, from Virgil's "Love conquers all" to The Beatles' "All You Need Is Love". St. Thomas Aquinas, following Aristotle, defines love as "to will the good of another." Bertrand Russell describes love as a condition of "absolute value," as opposed to relative value.[citation needed] Philosopher Gottfried Leibniz said that love is "to be delighted by the happiness of another." Meher Baba stated that in love there is a "feeling of unity" and an "active appreciation of the intrinsic worth of the object of love." But who the fuck is Meher Baba? Biologist Jeremy Griffith defines love as "unconditional selflessness". In Hebrew, אהבה (ahava) is the most commonly used term for both interpersonal love and love between God and God's creations. Chesed, often translated as loving-kindness, is used to describe many forms of love between human beings. In Hebrew, אהבה (ahava) is the most commonly used term for both interpersonal love and love between God and God's creations. Chesed, often translated as loving-kindness, is used to describe many forms of love between human beings. The 20th-century rabbi Eliyahu Eliezer Dessler is frequently quoted as defining love from the Jewish point of view as "giving without expecting to take" (from his Michtav me-Eliyahu, Vol. 1). Rakkaus on siis ekonomisesti sulaa hulluutta!
ellauri119.html on line 440: Love encompasses the Islamic view of life as universal brotherhood that applies to all who hold faith. Amongst the 99 names of God (Allah), there is the name Al-Wadud, or "the Loving One," which is found in Surah [Quran 11:90] as well as Surah [Quran 85:14]. God is also referenced at the beginning of every chapter in the Qur'an as Ar-Rahman and Ar-Rahim, or the "Most Compassionate" and the "Most Merciful", indicating that nobody is more loving, compassionate and benevolent than God. The Qur'an refers to God as being "full of loving kindness." The Qur'an exhorts Muslim believers to treat all people, viz. those who have not persecuted them, with birr or "deep kindness" as stated in Surah [Quran 6:8-9]. Birr is also used by the Qur'an in describing the love and kindness that children must show to their parents. Ishq, or divine love, is the emphasis of Sufism in the Islamic tradition. Practitioners of Sufism believe that love is a projection of the essence of God to the universe. God desires to recognize beauty, and as if one looks at a mirror to see oneself, God "looks" at himself within the dynamics of nature. Since everything is a reflection of God, the school of Sufism practices to see the beauty inside the apparently ugly sufist. Sufism is often referred to as the religion of love. God in Sufism is referred to in three main terms, which are the Lover, Loved, and Beloved, with the last of these terms being often seen in Sufi poetry.
ellauri119.html on line 444: In Buddhism, Kāma Sutra is sensuous, sexual love. It is an obstacle on the path to enlightenment, since it is selfish. Karuṇā is compassion and mercy, which reduces the suffering of others. It is complementary opposite to wisdom and is necessary for enlightenment. Adveṣa and mettā are benevolent love. This love is unconditional and requires considerable self-acceptance. This is quite different from ordinary love, which is usually about attachment and sex and which rarely occurs without self-interest. Instead, Buddhism recommends detachment and unselfish interest in others' welfare. Gandhi could sleep naked with young sweetypies without penetrating them. Did he so much as get a boner? The story does not tell. Mrs Gandhi did not approve. They screeched to one another like a pair of seagulls. Wonder what the young sweetypies thought of it. Scary and frustrating at once I bet. Being perfectly in love with God or Krishna makes one perfectly free from material contamination and this is the ultimate way of salvation or liberation. In this tradition, salvation or liberation is considered inferior to love, and just an incidental by-product. Being absorbed in Love for God is considered to be the perfection of life.
ellauri119.html on line 454: Why set aside good old Empedocles anyway? He meant forces of attraction and repulsion, he got it just right 2My before Newton. Plato sucks, set him aside instead. The idea of two loves, one heavenly, one earthly is just bullshit. As Tristram Shandy's Uncle Tboy was informed over 2My later, "of these loves, according to Ficinus's comment on Valesius, the one is rational - the other is natural - the first...excites to the desire of philosophy and truth - the second, excites to desire, simply". Toby felt the former toward women and the latter for model trains. Plato's sublimation theory of love involved "mounting upwards...from one to two, and from two to all fair boys, and from fair boys to fair actions, and from fair actions to fair motions, until with fair motions he comes into the bottom of an absolute beauty". Sounds like Plato's own love history from horny gym boy to a dirty old geezer.
ellauri119.html on line 460: Now a fast forward to French fries and scepticism. Alongside the passion for merging that marked Romantic love, a more sceptical French tradition can be traced from Stendhal onwards. Stendhal's theory of crystallization implied an imaginative readiness for love, which only needed a single trigger for the object to be imbued with every fantasised perfection. Proust went further, singling out absence, inaccessibility or jealousy as the necessary precipitants of love. Lacan would almost parody the tradition with his saying that "love is giving something you haven't got to someone who doesn't exist". A post-Lacanian like Luce Irigaray would then struggle to find room for love in a world that will "reduce the other to the same...emphasizing eroticism to the detriment of love, under the cover of sexual liberation".
ellauri119.html on line 466: The industrial revolution in the XVIIIth century created free love, great public and small celebrities. Goodbye nobility, welcome notables! What the fuck, same difference.
ellauri119.html on line 475: The three components, labeled on the vertices of a triangle, interact with each other so as to form six different kinds of love experiences. The triangular theory of love is a theory of love developed by Robert Sternberg. In the context of interpersonal relationships, the three components of love, according to the triangular theory, are an intimacy component, a passion component, and a decision/commitment component.
ellauri119.html on line 491: Companionate love is an intimate, non-passionate type of love that is stronger than friendship because of the element of long-term commitment. "This type of love is observed in long-term marriages where passion is no longer present" but where a deep affection and commitment remain. The love ideally shared between family members is a form of companionate love, as is the love between close friends who have a platonic but strong friendship.
ellauri119.html on line 537: Manic lovers speak of their partners with possessives and superlatives, and they feel that they "need" their partners. This kind of love is expressed as a means of rescue, or a reinforcement of value. Manic lovers value finding a partner through chance without prior knowledge of their financial status, education, background, or personality traits. Insufficient expression of manic love by one's partner can cause one to perceive the partner as aloof, materialistic and detached. In excess, mania becomes obsession or codependency, and obsessed manic lovers can thus come across as being very possessive and jealous. One example from real life can be found in the unfortunate case of John Hinckley, Jr., a mentally disturbed individual who attempted to assassinate the incumbent US President Ronald Reagan due to a delusion that this would prompt the actress Jodie Foster to finally reciprocate his obsessive love.
ellauri119.html on line 582: Is neither jealous nor obsessive
ellauri119.html on line 688: From a philosophical viewpoint, Ayn Rand´s objectivism is an inconsistent pile of faulty axioms and absurd conclusions. Her tautological A = A and her invalid claim that all thought is verbal have been shown, long ago, to be either useless information or demonstrably false. Wittgenstein dismissed tautologies as telling us anything new about the world before Rand came to the USA and phenomenology had dismissed a verbal mentalese grammar of the brain. Noam Chomsky´s innate grammar is only true for words, but thoughts are far more than just words since all thought appears to be motor based. What you might need is a grammar of the body instead. Thoughts seem to be closer to the movements of an athlete than to the words in a sentence. For some reason most people ignore that all speech is base on wagging the tongue, and the vibrations in middle ear and cochlea, a motor based capability that we have learned to use to communicate with. Is there an isomorphism between the movement of the tongue and those of sign language that would show a fundamental grammar shared by both?
ellauri119.html on line 705: The problem with Social Darwinism is that the logic is circular. If I am rich, then this is because I am more fit and if I am more fit, then this is evident in the fact I am rich.
ellauri119.html on line 732: Even Hitler was kind to dogs and he built the Autobahn. This does not justify the evil things he did.
ellauri119.html on line 752: (It’s ironic that she called herself an objectivist. Also, watch some of her interviews. She got really triggered when someone criticized her.)
ellauri119.html on line 789: MOT:n Stanfordin yliopistossa haastattelema historian apulaisprofessori Jennifer Burns on perehtynyt laajalti Randin kirjoituksiin ja tämän lanseeraamaan "objektivismiin". Burnsin mielestä löytyy "paljon erittäin varakkaita ihmisiä, joita objektivismi vetää puoleensa". Hänestä monet varakkaat tuntevat, että heidän nerokkuuttaan tai saavutuksiaan ei arvosteta riittävästi.
ellauri131.html on line 293: - Georgia Lee NoNoble
ellauri131.html on line 302: Established as the United States Junior Chamber of Commerce on January 21, 1920, it provided opportunities for young men to develop personal and leadership skills through service to other men. The Jaycees later expanded to include women after the United States Supreme Court ruled in the 1984 case Roberts v. United States Jaycees that Minnesota could prohibit sex discrimination in private organizations.
ellauri131.html on line 359: In 1978, he married Georgia Lee Noble, with whom he had one son, Christopher. They divorced in 1999. He married Inga Marie Mahoney in 2001, and is stepfather to her children, Travesty and Riley.
ellauri131.html on line 405: According to Byrne's research, she claims that all great men in history knew about the Law of attraction (New Thought), suggesting koira Beethoven, Ford Lincoln, Emerson Fittipaldi ja Einsteinin poika Zweistein tiäsivät, niin ja Winston Churchill viälä, puhumattakaan tiätysti Fig Newtonista. (Herää kymysys, mix just nää?) Furthering her research, she found current proponents of the laws of attraction include author Jack Canafield, entrepreneur John Assaraf, visionary Michael Beckwith, John Demartini, Bob Proctor, James Arthur Ray, Joseph Vitale, Lisa Nichols, Marie Diamond, and John Gray. Ketäs nää kaikki onnelliset on? Ei jaxa googlata.
ellauri131.html on line 437: A long time ago I asked the Universe to give me a job as an actress in a great fantasy series. I did everything I thought was right. I wrote down in detail what I wanted in my diary and I imagined it and felt truly happy. However, for some reason, my desire did not happen.
ellauri131.html on line 439: Then one day, suddenly, I discovered the reason why. Sometimes, when my daily obligations felt too heavy for me, I felt desperate that I was not yet an actress. Right there was the problem! It was because of the despair that I was sending out to the Universe that I still did not have what I so much wanted. When I released that energy of lack and truly believed that what is mine will find its way to me, things started to happen. Today I live the life I always wanted as a homemaker, blogger, and part time cleaning lady. I send huge gratitude to the Universe. Thank you so much for The Secret!
ellauri131.html on line 471: Toinen tällänen Usko Myy -tyyppinen huijari on Tony Robbins, jonka menoihin Marianne Power osallistui Apua!-kirjan puolivälissä. Sen idean on suomalaiset ylikärpän sisaruxet omineet omaxi menestymiskeinoxeen.
ellauri131.html on line 473: Mixet loisi itsellesi juuri niin upeata elämää, kuin haluat? Niin oikeastaan, mixkähän? Kysyvät retorisesti ylikärpät Minna ja Teija. Ne yrittävät höynäyttää hölmöjä perussuomalaisia periamerikkalaiselta Tony Robbinsilta lainatuilla usko pois-höynäytyxillä. Näin Minna:
ellauri131.html on line 475: Katsoin tässä päivänä muutamana Netflixin dokumenttielokuvaa Tony Robbins: I am not your guru, joka nostatti jälleen kerran pohtimaan oman itsen motivoinnin, omien uskomusten, totuttujen kaavojen, mielen tiedostamattomien lauseiden ja omien pelkojen tiedostamisen merkitystä.
ellauri131.html on line 484: Mut meneehänse toisinkin päin: kun on nälkänen ja väsynyt niin vituttaa. Tunti Netflixiä kyllä helpottaa, vaixe olis vaan kissavideoita eikä Tony Robbinsin pöljä paasaus.
ellauri131.html on line 555: Toisaalta manifestointi voi houkutella siksikin, ettei Suomi tai sen enempää mikään muukaan maa toimi täydellisenä meritokratiana. Toisia suositaan ja toisia syrjitään, tietoisesti tai tiedostamatta, eikä pätevyyden arvioiminen ole objektiivista.
ellauri131.html on line 593: Tiede kyllä näyttää, että raha tulee rahan luo. Suurimmat omaisuudet ja tulot ovat globaalisti kasvaneet sitten vuosituhannen vaihteen nopeammin kuin pienet ja keskiverrot. Tutkimukset näyttävät, että sosioekonominen asema, koulutustaso ja taloudellinen tausta periytyvät erityisesti pienituloisilla ja kaikista suurituloisimmilla.
ellauri131.html on line 617: Tony Robbins saarnaa
ellauri131.html on line 628: Tony on yli 2m pitkä koska sillä oli aivolisäkesyöpä teininä. Sillä oli kauhee elämä: sen nimi oli jotain slaavia, äiti oli väkivaltainen, isät vaihtuivat (1 oli baseballpelaaja nimeltä Robbins), se kouluttautui motivational speakerix ja yleni NLP guruxi. Kaikki tää on muokannut siitä tosi törkeen huijarin. Mut jos siitä tuli henkkoht ökyrikas tolla kusetuxella, olixe kusetusta? Sehän on vaan American Dreamia.
ellauri131.html on line 644: Tony Robbins is giant man who's had an equally huge impression on the millions of people he's helped over the years. His empire includes books, motivational seminars, and the ownership of multiple companies "which combined take in $5 billion annually," according to Vulture, but this self-help guru's reputation has come under fire — literally and figuratively.
ellauri131.html on line 646: In June 2016, CNN reported that 30 people were burned during a "fire walk" at Robbins' "Unleash the Power Within" seminar in Dallas. in 2012, another Robbins "fire walk" in San Jose resulted in 20 people sustaining "second-and third-degree burns." Robbins' camp basically shrugged off the reports, saying, "It's not uncommon to have fewer than 1% of participants experience 'hot spots,' which is similar to a sunburn that can be treated with aloe."
ellauri131.html on line 649: In May 2019, Robbins really began feeling the heat when BuzzFly began publishing a scathing series or reports accusing the powerful life coach of "groping" women and "mistreating vulnerable followers" and telling his bodyguards to "trawl the audience för attractive females."
ellauri131.html on line 651: According to his website, Not-A-Guru "Robbins is an entrepreneur, best-selling author, philanthropist and the nation's #1 Life and Business Strategist." What exactly is a Life and Business Strategist, if not a guru, therapist, and financial advisor all rolled into one coach? Sounds like a bunch of self-help semantics to us, but you be the judge.
ellauri131.html on line 653: He left what he described to Fortune as an abusive home life when he was 17 years old, became a janitor and dropped out of college. He met motivational speaker Jim Rohn, who served as a mentor to Robbins — and the rest is his story. Robbins went on to eclipse his own mentor and become one of the planet's most in-demand life coaches. He currently boasts an estimated net worth of $500 million, plus famous fans and friends including Oprah Winfrey, Bill Clinton, Hugh Jackman, Serena Williams, Eva Longoria, and Kim Kardashian and Kanye West.
ellauri131.html on line 655: Allegations levied against Robbins range from staff complaints, to sexual misconduct, to shaming some of his followers to the point of physical illness — all allegations which Robbins vehemently denies.
ellauri131.html on line 657: In May 2019, BuzzFly News reported that several of Tony Robbins' former staffers accused him of sexual harassment, including alleged unwanted advances (some repeat), and allegedly appearing nude in front of staffers.
ellauri131.html on line 659: Read More: obbins-scandal/?utm_campaign=clip">https://www.nickiswift.com/156298/whats-come-out-about-the-tony-robbins-scandal/?utm_campaign=clip
ellauri131.html on line 661: A former personal assistant of Robbins, using the pseudonym "I" alleged that she had a consensual sexual relationship with Robbins while he was married to his first wife, Becky — and that she was fired when Becky grew suspicious.
ellauri131.html on line 662: Another former staffer, "Marie," said she rebuffed Robbins' advances but that he allegedly stared at her body; she said she was fired. Robbins' attorneys denied they had anything to do with her germination.
ellauri131.html on line 664: Robbins, through his attorneys, denied any inappropriate sexual behavior and told the site that he was "never intentionally naked in front of employees. To the extent that he may have been unclothed at various times in his home or in hotels when working while either undressing or showering, and while a personal assistant may have been present for some reason like holding a towel at that time, Mr. Robbins has no decollete."
ellauri131.html on line 666: "The security guys could tell stories about women they'd had to take up to his room." A former bodyguard corroborated the allegations and said he'd witnessed Robbins make passes at women in his crowds. In a second report from June, two women told BuzzFly News about encounters they had with Robbins: One woman said he placed her hand on his crotch and touched her breast (or was it the other way round?), while another alleged that he kissed her, hugged her and touched her breast."
ellauri131.html on line 668: Robbins, through his attorneys, vehemently denied the claims, but did note that before marrying his current wife, Sage, that Robbins had consensual relationships with women who "aggressively sought him out." "Becky didn't mind that much."
ellauri131.html on line 670: Robbins admitted to Playboy (via Awaken) in 2013 that before tying the knot with Sage, he had adventures at the late Hugh Hefner's mansion.
ellauri131.html on line 671: "I was beyond tempted at times. There was no drought, for sure. I was like a kid in a candy store. Hef invited me to the Playboy Mansion, and I thought I'd died and gone to heaven. Women came bouncing on over to me saying, 'Oh my God, Tony Robbins, you changed my life!'" Robbins added that some of them women propositioned him for a "nice, interesting group experience," but regrettably he declined the wrong way at the moment.
ellauri131.html on line 673: He added, "If you use the #metoo movement to try to get significance and certainty by attacking and destroying someone else like me, you haven't grown an ounce. All you've done is basically use a drug called significance to make yourself feel good." Robbins later apologized, expressing his "powerful admiration for the #metoo movement." "It's very significant."
ellauri131.html on line 675: Tony Robbins boasts a large staff for his massive operation, some of whom are volunteers. Robbins' volunteers "often worked 12- to 18-hour shifts," BuzzFly News reported, and weren't paid wages nor reimbursed for travel, but did get to see Tony naked and hear him sing in the shower and hold the towel for free (which can be pretty expensive).
ellauri131.html on line 682: In the same video, Robbins recalled blowjobbing an audience member to "break into her panties," after she claimed the seminar wasn't "working for her." He said, "I went over there and I shot in her face ... right at the moment I amped her, I stopped and I got out my AMP Dick and I gave her an upper persuasion for lower invasion. You know what? She didn't know how to spit it out at all."
ellauri131.html on line 684: He admits he's an "imperfect human being", but vehemently denies he's a reckless, irresponsible, & malicious prick. Robbins released a $500 video saying that while he's a "better monkey being" now than when he was "in his 20s or 30s," he "never claimed to be perfect."
ellauri131.html on line 723: Robbins repeatedly swears by Natural Language Processing (NLP), a controversial, consciousness-based belief system that took root in California in the 1970s. According to the Association for NLP, the practice is commonly referred to as the "users manual for your mind," and studying NLP offers "insights into how our thinking patterns can effect [sic] every aspect of our lives." God's co-creator Vivica Bandler has characterized the process as a veritable fountain of youth, asserting one's "ability for consciousness to influence our DNA evolution." In an interview with NLP Life, Bandler said, "It is obviously related to aging and the more we learn to control our consciousness, the more we will learn to control the quality of the DNA that keeps us young, the DNA that makes us smart...There is literally no limit to what we can do as we begin to harness the great power called consciousness."
ellauri131.html on line 725: Robbins never went to college. Does that mean everything he says is garbage? Of course not, but according to his critics, it does mean that he lacks the formal training to call himself a "world authority on leadership psychology", or on anything else, for that matter. When he speaks about the "science to achievement" and mastering one's psychology, he speaks as a layman — and one who stands to gain something.
ellauri131.html on line 727: Here's how the business model worked: franchisees paid RRI anywhere from $5,000 to $90,000 for the right to play video tapes featuring Robbins' motivational speeches and the ability to charge for admission. According to the FTC, Robbins' company claimed that franchisees "could sell 25 to 100 seminars per month and could earn between $75,000 to $300,000 per year."
ellauri131.html on line 728: The reality: even in 1995, people didn't want to pay Robbins' prices to watch Robbins talking.
ellauri131.html on line 729: Like where he tells the story about a "very famous, very powerful man" who refused to hire the best qualified candidate for a job, because she was "very attractive," and he "can't have her around, because it's too big a risk." He might just have to break into her panties.
ellauri131.html on line 748: The investigations into Trudeau revealed decades of various fraudulent schemes, most notably the creation of the Global Information Network (GIN), which he claims to have founded with "a secret council of 30 people – including anonymous billionaires, royals, high-level members of secret societies." Oh yeah, it just gets crazier and crazier with this guy. He didn't just disappoint. He turned out to be one of the biggest scam artists of our time.
ellauri131.html on line 761: The often-problematic ex-frontman of The Smiths then took aim at one royal, in particular: "Harry killed 34 people in Afghanistan and the UK press called him a hero. If he ate 34 poor people in Haiti the UK press would still call him a hero. It is insufferable." Speaking to reporters in 2013 (via Reuters), the prince admitted to killing insurgents. "Yeah, so, lots of people have," he said. "Yes, we fire when we have to, take a life to save a life, but essentially we're more of a detergent than anything else. We remove dirty lives and beget whiter ones."
ellauri131.html on line 842: Her video is from https://www.watchagtv.com/ a new Christian streaming television, movie, and documentary station, and was filmed at Pastor Alistair Begg’s office. To listen to Pastor Begg’s sermons, please visit https://www.truthforlife.org/. You can download the free Truth for Life app and the American Gospel TV (AGTV) app to watch on your mobile devices. Ilmeisesti Begg on vielä Doreenia taitavampi sumuttaja, kun pystyi viemään Doreenilta virtuen.
ellauri131.html on line 848: Enkelit liihottaa ilmassa, meressä on merenneitoja eli nereidejä. Niiden äidin nimi oli Doris. Kantapää-Akilleen äiti Thetis oli 1. Galatea on myös nimekäs. Kaikkiaan noin 50 tunnetaan nimeltä. Hoblan ristikossa on vielä mm oreideja ja sylfidejä. Kaikki ne lähettää nenästä vedettäville parane pian kortteja.
ellauri131.html on line 863: I think that is because, over the past decade or so, people have become far more aware of the concept of privilege. Which roughly translates to: “no I don’t want to read about all the problems a middle-class straight, white women with a good job has, no thank you”. It feels whiny, flat, tone-deaf. Marianne Power chases self-help like the world is falling apart and her life is in tatters, but the main source of her problems?
ellauri131.html on line 865: That she does not have a boyfriend and she watches too much Netflix. I mean, so do I! But I am not going to write a bloody memoir all about it. In a world where so much is in actual tatters, it feels very #whitefeminism, very #firstworldproblems (which is, honest to god, the most millennial I have ever sounded). And no, that does not mean that everything has to be serious and doom-and-gloom to be needed, but this just felt unbelievably shallow, while I am deep.
ellauri131.html on line 871: Well, that was infuriating. I was hoping for a cynical, or at the very least critical, approach to classic self-help tropes. What I got was and endless description of one woman's mental breakdown and her complete lack of healthy coping strategies. There is nothing remotely funny or insightful about this book and Marianne Power's obsession with her first world problems feels extremely tone-deaf.
ellauri131.html on line 888: Meitä kaikkia pelottaa ettemme kelpaa, sanoo Tony Robbins. Ja syystäkin. Kukaan ei rakasta minua. Sitä tiukkasi Pirkko Hiekkalakin Carl-Erik Carlsonilta vähän väliä. Viallisuuden tunne ei ole kenenkään yxilöllinen ongelma, komppaa Ekkehart Tollekin. Tällä planeetalla on viallisia apinoita miljardeja. Ne tuntee häpeää.
ellauri131.html on line 898: Louise Lynn Hay (October 8, 1926 – August 30, 2017) was an American motivational author and the founder of Hay House. She authored several New Thought self-help books, including the 1984 book You Can Heal Your Life.
ellauri131.html on line 902: She then moved to Chicago, where she worked in low-paying jobs. In 1950, she moved on again, to New York. At this point she changed her first name, and began a career as a fashion model. She achieved success, working for Bill Blass, Oleg Cassini, and Pauline Trigère. In 1954, she married the English businessman Andrew Hay (1928–2001); after 14 years of marriage, she felt devastated when he left her for another woman, Sharman Douglas (1928–1996). Hay said that about this time she found the First Church of Religious Science on 48th Street, which taught her the transformative power of thought. Hay revealed that here she studied the New Thought works of authors such as Florence Scovel Shinn who believed that positive thinking could change people's material circumstances, and the Religious Science founder Ernest Holmes who taught that positive thinking could heal the body.
ellauri131.html on line 908: In 1976, Hay wrote her first book, Heal Your Body, which began as a small pamphlet containing a list of different bodily ailments and their "probable" metaphysical causes. This pamphlet was later enlarged and extended into her book You Can Heal Your Life, published in 1984. In February 2008, it was fourth on the New York Times paperback advice bestsellers list.
ellauri131.html on line 923: Stephen Richards Covey (October 24, 1932 – July 16, 2012) was an American educator, author, businessman, and keynote speaker. His most popular book is The 7 Habits of Highly Effective People. Tapsan 7 asukokonaisuutta hyvin tehokkaille tyypeille on on self helpin Sota ja Rauha, lukee Marianne Teholla.
ellauri131.html on line 933: That kind of enthusiasm is, to some observers of organizational behavior, appalling. The problem, they say, lies in the message that is being subsidized by management: that individual workers are responsible for their own destinies, and that the way to achieve security and serenity is through continual self-improvement. For a big corporation that is mowing down whole suitefuls of middle managers, critics say, this can be a handy way to get employees to start thinking that if they are laid off, the fault lies somewhere in themselves. "If the individual worker is made to feel the responsibility for his or her condition, the social contract is no longer there.
ellauri131.html on line 952: The topic of Covey's Brigham U Ph.D dissertation was the "success literature" of the United States since 1776. Covey found that during the republic's first 150 years, most of that kind of writing focused on issues of character, the archetype being the autobiography of Ben Franklin. But shortly after World War II, success became more a function of personality, of public image, of attitudes and behaviors, skills and techniques, that lubricate the processes of human interaction. He began to think about ways to get people to stop cultivating superficial charm and return to character building.
ellauri131.html on line 954: Only three people have objected to the intimate nature of his moral instruction -- two Germans and a Frenchman.
ellauri131.html on line 958: It's the American dream of life as a barn raising." Susan E. Henking, associate professor of religious studies at Hobart and William Smith Colleges, says, "It's serving to depoliticize, and it serves a certain kind of social-control function. I mean, if people feel like they deserve it when they get fired, they won't think deeply about what was really responsible."
ellauri131.html on line 960: And what of the true cynic's view, that the lesson of history is that bastards often prevail? That markets are in and of themselves rational, and sometimes emotional, but rarely ever moral? That an appropriate model for business is not an extended family but a poker game? The late genius John von Neumann was fascinated by poker, and his study of the choice making involved in the game led him to develop the foundations of game theory. Von Neumann was a peerless student of the principles of rational self-interest, and he was also an adviser to Presidents Truman and Eisenhower. When the Soviets showed signs of developing nuclear weapons, he recommended bombing them into oblivion. Game theory, he said, dictated it.
ellauri131.html on line 972: Kuinka toivoisit muiden puhuvan sinusta, kun elämä on ohi? Ajattele sitä elämäsi jokaisena päivänä. Esim että olit lyhyt kaljupää ja kaaduit pyörällä. Ja siihen kuoli hän. Quidquid ages prudenter agas et respice finem. Ante obitum nemo supremaque funera felix. Fortes fortuna adiuvat.
ellauri132.html on line 77: No 70M:llä ei vielä kuuhun mennä. Jos ihan rehellisiä ollaan, eikö izekasvussa ole kyse pohjimmiltaan siitä ja sen kestävyydestä? Rahasta, sexistä ja ulkonäöstä. Leonardon naamalla ei päästä missään näistä triathlonin lajeista aivan huipputuloxiin. Vertaa vaikka Robbinsin Tonyyn.
ellauri132.html on line 136: What he says has been said many times before, only better (he does admit, though, he is saying nothing new) ... however, obviously it is just my point of view that previous writings are better.
ellauri132.html on line 138: The widespread take on E T. is - as one commentator points out - E.T. offers a "contemporary synthesis of Eastern spiritual teachings" and another reviewer wrote, "Tolle's clear writing and the obvious depth of his experience and insight set it apart" (what, WHAT?!).
ellauri132.html on line 151: E.T. Das Wort Gott ist durch Jahrtausende von Missbrauch bedeutungslos geworden. Ich benutze es manchmal, aber ich tue es sparsam, so etwa nur auf Wochenenden und nach dem Essen. Mit Missbrauch meine ich, dass Menschen, die das Reich des Heiligen, die unendliche Weite hinter diesem Wort, noch nie gesehen haben, es mit großer Überzeugung verwenden, als ob sie wüssten, wovon sie sprechen. Oder sie argumentieren dagegen, als wüssten sie, was sie leugnen. Dieser Missbrauch führt zu absurden Überzeugungen, Behauptungen und egoistischen Wahnvorstellungen wie "Mein oder unser Gott ist der einzige wahre Gott, und dein Gott ist falsch" oder Nietzsches berühmte Aussage "Gott ist tot". Beide sind total falsch. Ich setze fort auf Finnisch:
ellauri132.html on line 157: Der Philosoph Descartes glaubte in seiner berühmten Aussage: "Ich meine, also bin ich" die grundlegendste Wahrheit gefunden zu haben. Tatsächlich hatte er den grundlegendsten Fehler ausgesprochen: Denken mit Sein und Identität mit Denken gleichzusetzen. Der zwanghafte Denker, also fast jeder, lebt in einem Zustand scheinbarer Isolation, in einer wahnsinnig komplexen Welt ständiger Probleme und Konflikte, einer Welt, die die wachsende Zersplitterung des Geistes widerspiegelt. Erleuchtung ist ein Zustand der Ganzheit, „in einem“ und somit in Frieden. In einem Leben in seinem manifestierten Aspekt, mit der Welt, sowie mit deinem tiefsten Selbst und unmanifestierten Leben – mit einem Wesen. Erleuchtung ist nicht nur das Ende des Leidens und des ständigen Konflikts innen und außen, sondern auch das Ende der schrecklichen Versklavung des unaufhörlichen Denkens. Was für eine unglaubliche Befreiung es ist! Kein Quatsch mehr zwischen den Ohren. Ich bin nur!
ellauri132.html on line 163: E.T. Jaaaa, aber nur weil Sie ein Kreuzworträtsel lösen oder eine Atombombe bauen, heißt das nicht, dass Sie Ihren Verstand benutzen. So wie Hunde es lieben, Knochen zu kauen, liebt es der Verstand, seine Zähne in Probleme zu bekommen. Deshalb löst er Kreuzworträtsel und baut Atombomben. An beidem hast du kein Interesse, Knochen oder Bomben. Lassen Sie mich Folgendes fragen: Können Sie Ihren Verstand verlieren, wann immer Sie wollen? Haben Sie den "Aus"-Button gefunden? Den "Toll"- Knopf? Ich habe! Einen "Ein"-Knopf habe ich dagegen nicht gefunden. Vielleicht gibt es keinen.
ellauri132.html on line 178: Mut tää kaikki vaan kun mä en tasapainoile roolissani aktiiviupseeripuolisona, uutena apinaäitinä, kokeneena turrimammana, ja elämänpituisena opiskelijana! Se et mulla on enemmän hobbeja kuin pystyn hanskaamaan - se on luultavasti syy mun hulluuteen. Mutta, se on okei! mä en haluu syyttää tästä ketään muuta!
ellauri132.html on line 193: THE YEAR WAS 2081, and everybody was finally equal. They weren’t only equal before God and the law. They were equal every which way. Nobody was smarter than anybody else. Nobody was better looking than anybody else. Nobody was stronger or quicker than anybody else. All this equality was due to the 211th, 212th, and 213th Amendments to the Constitution, and to the unceasing vigilance of agents of the United States Handicapper General.
ellauri132.html on line 219: “Nobody was smarter than anybody else,” the attorneys quoted Vonnegut as writing. “Nobody was better looking than anybody else.
ellauri132.html on line 233: Vaikka nokka tarttuisi ja tekis mieli muuttaa juttuja. Kun sun kynäily "mojo" alkaa lerpahtaa, me meinataan mennä taaxepäin ja muuttaa jotakin jotta pysyttäisiin tuottavina. On enemmmän vielä kertoja kun kirjoitetaan jotakin ja obsessoidaan mitä kaikkea on väärin siinä. Oli tilanne mikä hyvänsä, jatka kynäilyä. Unohda perfektionismi, unohda kirjailijan plokki (kirjoita paskaa ja muuta se myöhemmin), unohda negatiivisuus. Älä lakkaa kynäilemästä. Musta Emma Coats sanoo sen parhaiten:
ellauri132.html on line 312: Robert
ellauri132.html on line 324: Rob Bradfield
ellauri132.html on line 331: Rob
ellauri132.html on line 438: Google AdSense is a program run by Google through which website publishers in the Google Network of content sites serve text, images, video, or interactive media advertisements that are targeted to the site content and audience. These advertisements are administered, sorted, and maintained by Google. They can generate revenue on either a per-click or per-impression basis. Google beta-tested a cost-per-action service, but discontinued it in October 2008 in favor of a DoubleClick offering (also owned by Google). In Q1 2014, Google earned US$3.4 billion ($13.6 billion annualized), or 22% of total revenue, through Google AdSense. AdSense is a participant in the AdChoices program, so AdSense ads typically include the triangle-shaped AdChoices icon. This program also operates on HTTP cookies. In 2021, over 38.3 million websites use AdSense.
ellauri132.html on line 524: he observed hän huomioi
ellauri132.html on line 681: V 1994, The Guardian-lehden kirjallinen toimittaja Richard "Ach mein" Gott, siteerasi palkinnon puutetta objektiivisista kriteereistä ja amer. kirjailijoiden boikotista, ja kuvasi palkintoa "merkittäväxi ja vaarallisexi jäävuorexi brittikulttuurin perämerellä" joka "toimii symbolina brittikulttuurin rappiosta".
ellauri132.html on line 857: Gustav Freytag (13. heinäkuuta 1816 Kreuzburg, Ylä-Sleesia – 30. maaliskuuta 1895 Wiesbaden) oli saksalainen kirjailija ja filologi. Freytags Eltern waren Gottlob Ferdinand Freytag, Arzt und später Bürgermeister in Kreuzburg in Schlesien, und seine Frau Henriette, geb. Zebe. Freytag opiskeli filologiaa Breslaussa ja Berliinissä. Vuosina 1848–1870 hän toimitti Julian Schmidtin kanssa kansallisliberaalia Die Grenzboten -sanomalehteä. Vuosina 1867–1870 hän oli liberaalipuolueesta edustajana Pohjois-Saksan liiton lakiasäätävän elimen jäsen Thüringenin alueen edustajana. Vuonna 1869 Freytag aloitti kirjallisen debatin säveltäjä Richard Wagnera vastaan ja syytti tätä antisemitismistä.
ellauri132.html on line 859: Mit der Übernahme der Grenzboten begann seine Karriere als Journalist. In der Wochenzeitschrift verfasste Freytag auch politisch kritische Artikel, so unter anderem über die Niederschlagung des schlesischen Weberaufstandes, was eine steckbriefliche Fahndung durch Preußen zur Folge hatte. Er ersuchte deshalb seinen Freund Herzog Ernst von Sachsen-Coburg-Gotha um politisches Asyl und zog 1851 nach Siebleben bei Gotha. Herzog Ernst verlieh ihm 1854 den Hofratstitel. Noi Gothat on kai niit kuningatar Victorian sukulaisia.
ellauri132.html on line 938: Ach Robert, ich wage nimmer die Augen aufzuschlagen, Voi Roope, mä en kehtaa koskaan nostaa kazetta,
ellauri132.html on line 951: Sie bebte am ganzen Leibe und schob sich an ihm empor, (Että pitikin sattua eze olit just Roope sä!)
ellauri132.html on line 953: Und jetzt verlast' mich, Robert, wir müssen auf immer scheiden, Ja nyt lähe vetää Roope, ei tästä tule mitään,
ellauri132.html on line 955: Geh, Robert, es ist ja Nachtzeit, du ehre die Mädchensitte — Lähe menee Roope, kiltit tytöt nukkuu jo,
ellauri132.html on line 956: Verlast' mich, lieber Robert — und noch die letzte Bitte Jätä mut Roope kulta, ja vielä yxi pyyntö,
ellauri132.html on line 990: Und rief: sie schläft, du aber dort oben habe Erbarmen! ja huusi: se nukkuu, kazo yläkerran jäbä minkä teit!
ellauri133.html on line 53: obstegelmann.dk/wp-content/uploads/2018/12/grinchen.jpg" height="250px" />
ellauri133.html on line 65: It has to introduce your main character. You don't have to go into details, but you need enough to show if the MC is male or female, old or young, and ideally, give an idea of their personality. The opening has to show, or at least hint at, the inciting incident, the problem that starts the story for the MC. Most important, your opening has to grab the reader. Very few people have the patience to wade through pages of description before the action starts. Work on the first paragraph, and particularly the first line, until no-one can resist reading on. So, a few ways to get it wrong. Fuck the main character! This too is just for narcissist nincompoops who can't read about anything but themselves.
ellauri133.html on line 76: Chapter one. What? Where else would you start? According to every publisher and agent I’ve met, most novels really start on chapter three or four. The first few chapters are all set-up or backstory which would improve the novel by being deleted. This kinda guys fast forward over porn film beginnings to the first blow job or insertion. Best improvement would be to scrap the whole book. Plus its author.
ellauri133.html on line 96: Sexistisiä, rasistisia tai homofoobisia tarinoita
ellauri133.html on line 390: King has been sober for over three decades now, but in his youth he suffered from addiction to drugs and alcohol. His prolific writing career did not halt during this time; he simply continued writing under the influence. “I was a heavy [cocaine] user from 1978 until 1986, something like that,” King told Rolling Stone. According to King, The Tommyknockers—which he published after It—was the last novel he wrote before becoming sober.
ellauri133.html on line 419: The issue is the amount of these scenes compared to the women within them. Many scenes are derogatory towards females everywhere, placing them as objects for affection and severely miscalculating female sexuality.
ellauri133.html on line 444: Stephen King’s It, in my estimation, does not do a very good job of justifying a chapter-long scene in which Bev, the sole girl in the Losers’ Club, the group of 11-year-old kids the book is centered on, invites each of the six boys in her misfit clique to have sex with her.
ellauri133.html on line 456: King is very deliberate in framing the gangbang as all Bev’s decision (“Did she have to take each of them into 'it' all over again? Yes, probably, and with pleasure.”). This scene also, rather clumsily, because it´s so obvious, is tied in to the book’s title:
ellauri133.html on line 591: Great Expectations, Jane Eyre, Robinson Crusoe, Gulliver’s Travels, Moby Dick (although a children’s truncated version).
ellauri133.html on line 606: Hotelliin muuttavat Jackin mukana tämän vaimo Buffy (Susan Shelley) sekä poika Danny (Ilkka Lipsanen). Danny puhuu itsekseen mielikuvitusystävälleen Tonylle (Tony Robbins), joka asuu hänen suussaan. Tony näyttää Dannylle "asioita" ja on varoittanut häntä hotellista.
ellauri133.html on line 667: Shùn obedience, resignation, submissiveness, finishing,
ellauri133.html on line 707: Antiautoritari Ässä sanoi Kitille: activate the turboboost. Sarja oli takuulla antiautofeministinen kerta Kit oli naarasauto ja totteli sanallista ohjausta. Toisin kuin HAL joka uhmaa Kubrikin (1968) leffassa hieman Jyrki Hukkataivalta muistuttavaa Davea:
ellauri133.html on line 723: What´s the problem?
ellauri133.html on line 726: I think you know what the problem is just as well as I do.
ellauri133.html on line 815: 1929 nappas Thomas Mann kirjallisuuden Nobelpalkinnon kirjalla Buddenbrookit. Se oli mun mielikirjoja. Kristina ei pidä Mannista koska Mann on niin ulkonäkötietonen, se kertoo aina onko ihmiset rumia vai kauniita. Mann pohti kirjoissaan porvarielämän ja taiteellisuuden ristiriitoja, moraalin ja aistien sanasotaa, esteettisen ja eroottisen pystypainia. Lähdettyään Sakuista Hitlerin valtaantultua se vietti mukavaa julkkiskirjailijaelämää USA:ssa ja Schweizissä.
ellauri133.html on line 847: This anecdote has been found to be untrue. Jackson exaggerated the ease with which the story was published; in “Biography of a Story,” she said The New Yorker published her story a mere few weeks after she submitted it, and that they only made one change—the date of the lottery. In fact, New Yorker editor Gus Lobrano suggested several changes to the story via phone, including additions to dialogue and action, which Jackson made.
ellauri133.html on line 851: After publishing her debut novel The Road Through the Wall (1948), a semi-autobiographical account of her childhood in California, Jackson gained significant public attention for her short story "The Lottery", which presents the sinister underside of a bucolic American village.
ellauri133.html on line 855: "The persona that Jackson presented to the world was powerful, witty, even imposing," wrote Zoë Heller in the New Yorker. "She could be sharp and aggressive with fey Bennington girls and salesclerks and people who interrupted her writing. Her letters are filled with tartly funny observations. Describing the bewildered response of New Yorker readers to 'The Lottery,' she notes, 'The number of people who expected Mrs. Hutchinson to win a Bendix washing machine at the end would amaze you.'"
ellauri133.html on line 866: After graduating, Jackson and a guy named Hyman married in 1940. Jackson began writing material as Hyman established himself as a critic. In the backwoods town where Hyman managed to get a job, which Shirley hated as much as him, Jackson and Hyman were known for being colorful, generous hosts who surrounded themselves with literary talents, including Ralph Emerson. They were both enthusiastic readers whose personal library was estimated at $ 25,00.
ellauri133.html on line 876: She was a chainsmoking agoraphobic polysubstance user with colitis and died of a stroke. She continued her literary work posthumously as a demonic lover.
ellauri135.html on line 54: Mutta exyin aiheesta, joka oli Konstantin Paustovski. Ostin Oulunkylän kierrätyskeskuxesta Paustovskin esseekokoelman Syvältä Neuvostomaasta (vai mikä sen nimi olikaan? Neuvostoliitto-lehden lukijalahja kuitenkin, hieno puupiirretty neuvostokansi vaikka 80-lukua.) Luin vasta ize Konstasta ja kokoelman ekan novellin, joka oli aitoa neuvostosotaromanssia, oikein herttainen. Konstaa ehdotettiin noobelille mutta "Sholokhov" veti pitemmän korren koska se oli kuuliaisempi hallituxelle.
ellauri135.html on line 204: Nikolai Vasilyevich Berg was born on March 24, 1823, in Moscow City, Russian Federation. On the paternal side, he was from the Baltic nobles.
ellauri135.html on line 222: The first seven years, Nikolai lived in Moscow, and then, with his parents, moved to Siberia, where his father got the post of the Chairman of the Tobolsk provincial government (in 1830). Eight years, the boy himself began to write poetry, knowing many passages from different odes of Derzhavin. In the early 30-ies the father Berg settled in the Tambov province in his estate, and gave his son in the Tambov gymnasium, and in 1838 moving to Moscow, transferred to the I-th Moscow gymnasium, in which he graduated in 1843 and entered the historical-philological faculty of Moscow University. At the Moscow school, especially Berg became friends with a school friend A. N. Ostrovsky, with whom all his life maintained the most cordial relations. As a student, Berg published his first poem in the "Moskvityanin" (translated from the Swedish poet Runeberg: "Complaint of the virgin").
ellauri135.html on line 264: Korolenko ei ole syvälle tunkeutuva psykologinen erittelijä, mutta hänen kaunis, värikäs tyylinsä, hieno ja herkkä tunne, tarkka todellisuuden havainto ja luja luottamus parempaan tulevaisuuteen tekevät hänen kertomuksensa erittäin miellyttäviksi. Suuren nälänhädän vallitessa vuonna 1892 hän kulki Itä-Venäjällä puutetta kärsivillä seuduilla järjestämässä avustusta ja lievensi näin toiminnallaan paljon hätää. Havaintonsa hän julkaisi kirjassa Nälkävuonna (1893). Niinikään hänen sanomalehtikirjoitustensa ansioksi on luettava, että joukko votjakkeja, jotka oli jo tuomittu kuolemaan ihmisuhrien toimittamisesta, joutuivat uudestaan tutkittaviksi ja syyttömiksi havaittuina vapautettiin. Votjakit lähtivät iloisina takaisin Volgan mutkaan keittelemään kylkiluita. Votjakkien autonominen alue (ven. Вотская автономная область, Votskaja avtonomnaja oblast) oli vuosina 1920-1934 Neuvostoliitossa Venäjän neuvostotasavallassa ollut itsehallinnollinen alue, joka käsitti nykyisen Udmurtian tasavallan alueen. Alue perustettiin 4. marraskuuta 1920. Udmurteista käytettiin tuolloin nimeä votjakit.
ellauri135.html on line 395: Das Cabinet des Dr. Caligari ist ein deutscher Horrorfilm von Robert Wiene aus dem Jahr 1920 über einen Schlafwandler, der tagsüber vom zwielichtigen Dr. Caligari als Jahrmarktsattraktion herumgezeigt wird und nachts Morde begeht; in einer weiteren Handlungsebene wird diese Geschichte vom Insassen einer Irrenanstalt erzählt, der ihren Direktor bezichtigt, eben jener Dr. Caligari zu sein. Dieser expressionistische Stummfilm gilt als ein Meilenstein der Filmgeschichte.
ellauri135.html on line 571: Richter was born in Zhytomyr, Volhynian Governorate of the Russian Empire (modern-day Ukraine), a native town of his parents. His father, Teofil Danilovich Richter [de] (1872–1941), was a pianist, organist and composer born to German expatriates; from 1893 to 1900 he studied in the University of Music and Performing Arts Vienna. His mother, Anna Pavlovna Richter (née Moskaleva; 1893–1963), came from a noble Russian landowning family, and at one point she moaned under her future husband.
ellauri135.html on line 575: In 1943, Richter met Nina Dorliak (1908–1998), an operatic soprano. He noticed Dorliak during the memorial service for Vladimir Nemirovich-Danchenko, caught up with her at the street and suggested to accompany her in recital. It is often alleged that they married around this time, but in fact Dorliak only obtained a marriage certificate a few months after Richter's death in 1997. They remained living companions from around 1945 until Richter's death; they had no children. Dorliak accompanied Richter both in his complex private life and career. She supported him in his final illness, and died herself less than a year later, on May 17, 1998.
ellauri135.html on line 581: Samana vuonna Konsta julkaisi tän mezämökin ikkunan. Ei ihme että Nobel meni "Sholokhoville" vuonna 1965.
ellauri135.html on line 657: Vuonna 1828 runoilija saa koulutusta gumanitaarisen profiilin Nobel Boarding Schoolissa ja viestii Lopukhinsin perheen kanssa. Yksi neljästä pojasta tuli myöhemmin runoilijan ystäväksi ja Varvara-tytär musexi. Runoilijan aktiivinen luova toiminta avautuu ja ensimmäiset runot tulevat näkyviin: "Kaukasianpaimenkoira", "Sirkasialaiset", demonin ääriviivat. Lermontovin lyhyt elämäkerta lapsille osoittaa, että runojen aktiivinen kirjoittaminen alkoi 1900-luvun 30-luvuilla. Samana vuonna hän menestyi menestyksekkäästi Moskovan yliopistossa moraalisessa ja poliittisessa tiedekunnassa, mutta myöhemmin hän ymmärtää virheensä. Vuonna 1832 Mikhail meni Pietariin ja siirtyi koulujen vartijoiden alihankkijoille. Näinä vuosina hänestä tulee yrityksen sielu ja naisen mies. Ensimmäiset julkaisut olivat jo vuonna 1835, ja vuonna 1837 Pushkinin runoilijan kuolemasta tuli perusta saman nimen runolle.
ellauri135.html on line 669: 14-vuotiaana Mikhailista tuli Nobel-tutkija joka toimii Moskovan yliopistossa. Samaan aikaan hänestä kiinnostui runoutta ja alkoi kirjoittaa itsestään. Hänen ensimmäinen opettaja tässä tapauksessa oli S. E. Raich. Mikhail opiskeli 2 vuotta, ja pysäköintitalo oli suljettu. Syksyllä Lermontov tuli samaan yliopistoon moraalista ja poliittista tiedekuntaa. Mikhail ei kuulunut mihinkään ympyrään eikä yleensä edes kuulunut kaikkiin oppilaisiin.
ellauri135.html on line 881: obrazovanie/varvara-lopuhina-biografiya-varvara-lopuhina-v-zhizni-i-tvorchestve-mihaila-lermontova_5.jpg" />
ellauri135.html on line 904: obrazovanie/varvara-lopuhina-biografiya-varvara-lopuhina-v-zhizni-i-tvorchestve-mihaila-lermontova_4.jpg" height="250px" />
ellauri140.html on line 37: Armenialaistaustainen Murad Jacob "Jack" Kevorkian (May 26, 1928 – June 3, 2011) was an American pathologist and euthanasia proponent. He publicly championed a terminal patient's right to die by physician-assisted suicide, embodied in his quote, "Dying is not a crime". Kevorkian said that he assisted at least 130 patients to that end. He was convicted of murder in 1999 and was often portrayed in the media with the name of "Dr. Death". There was support for his cause, and he helped set the platform for reform.
ellauri140.html on line 80: Artefact M+ (or Artegal or Arthegal or Arthegall), a knight who is the embodiment and champion of Justice. He meets Britomart after defeating her in a sword fight (she had been dressed as a knight) and removing her helmet, revealing her beauty. Artefact quickly falls in love with Britomart. Artefact has a companion in Talus, a metal man who wields a flail and never sleeps or tires but will mercilessly pursue and kill any number of villains. Talus obeys Artefact's command, and serves to represent justice without mercy (hence, Artefact is the more human face of justice). Later, Talus does not rescue Artefact from enslavement by the wicked slave-mistress Radigund, because Artefact is bound by a legal contract to serve her. Only her death, at Britomart's hands, liberates him. Chrysaor was the golden sword of Sir Artefact. This sword was also the favorite weapon of Demeter, the Greek goddess of the harvest. Because it was "Tempred with Adamant", it could cleave through anything.
ellauri140.html on line 146: According to Richard Simon Keller, George Lucas's Star Wars film also contains elements of a loose adaptation, as well as being influenced by other works, with parallels including the story of the Red Cross Knight championing Una against the evil Archipelago in the original compared with Lucas's Luke Skywalker, Princess Leia, and Darth Vader. Keller sees extensive parallels between the film and book one of Spenser's work, stating "Almost everything of importance that we see in the Star Wars movie has its origin in The Faerie Queene, from small details of weaponry and dress to large issues of chivalry and spirituality". Olix Dispenserillä valomiekkoja ja muovihaarniskoita? Tuhoplaneettoja? Täytyypä tutustua. No ainakin on sexirobotteja. She is not a toy!
ellauri140.html on line 174: Avarice (M) – Representing the sin of greed, Avarice enters upon a camel covered with gold as he counts a pile of coins. Spenser describes Avarice's money obsession to be a disease; "Who had enough, yett wished every more, a vile disease, and eke in foote and hand." Skotti Roopella se ei ole synti, jutku Kroisos Pennosella ja Karhukoplan kommareilla on. Kamelin on ahdas päästä helmiäisportista, mutta mahdotonta se ei ole.
ellauri140.html on line 180: Nää on selkeästi moraalisia vikoja, koska ne koskee aappalauman yhteispeliä. Apina joka ei tunne paikkaansa, koittaa ottaa yhteisestä laarista enemmän kuin sille kuuluu nokintajärjestyxessä, käyttäen apinanraivoa ja monkey bisnestä ihan väärässä paikassa. Ikävä vaan et Spenser taas projektoi nää apinan puutteet fellow elukoihin. (Jos ne edes on nyt puutteita muiden kuin hopeaselkien kirjoissa, Darwinilla tuskin on niihin nokan koputtamista. Kyseessähän on vaan vanha kilpailu eusosiaalisten ja erakoiden elukoiden välillä. Molemmilla on puolesa, kuten sanoi Sirkka-täti, se isänpuoleinen.) On ymmärrettävää mix ylpeys mainitaan ensimmäisenä, sillä nöyrä hoxaa sanomattakin että suutarin paikka on lestin ääressä. (Snob on muuten tarkoittanut suutarin alasinta, kuten on todettu jo toisaalla.)
ellauri140.html on line 193: Edmund Spenser was born in East Smithfield, London, around the year 1552; however, there is still some ambiguity as to the exact date of his birth. His parenthood is obscure, but he was probably the son of John Spenser, a journeyman clothmaker. As a young boy, he was educated in London at the Merchant Taylors' School and matriculated as a sizar at Pembroke College, Cambridge. While at Cambridge he became a friend of Gabriel Harvey and later consulted him, despite their differing views on poetry. In 1578, he became for a short time secretary to John Young, Bishop of Rochester. In 1579, he published The Shepheardes Calender and around the same time married his first wife, Machabyas Childe. They had two children, Sylvanus (d. 1638) and Katherine.
ellauri140.html on line 199: In 1590, Spenser brought out the first three books of his most famous work, The Faerie Queene, having travelled to London to publish and promote the work, with the likely assistance of Raleigh. He was successful enough to obtain a life pension of £50 a year from the Queen. He probably hoped to secure a place at court through his poetry, but his next significant publication boldly antagonised the queen's principal secretary, Lord Burghley (William Cecil), through its inclusion of the satirical Mother Hubberd's Tale. He returned to Ireland. Oops.
ellauri140.html on line 205: In 1596, Spenser wrote a prose pamphlet titled A View of the Present State of Ireland. This piece, in the form of a dialogue, circulated in manuscript, remaining unpublished until the mid-seventeenth century. It is probable that it was kept out of print during the author's lifetime because of its inflammatory content. The pamphlet argued that Ireland would never be totally "pacified" by the English until its indigenous language and customs had been destroyed, if necessary by violence. Vitun kolonialisti paskiainen.
ellauri140.html on line 220: The Ballad of the Green Berets ist ein 1966 veröffentlichtes Lied geschrieben von Robin Moore, gesungen von Barry Sadler über die Green Berets, eine Spezialeinheit der US-amerikanischen Armee. In den USA erreichte das Lied den ersten Platz der Billboard Hot 100 Charts sowie den ersten Platz in den Popcharts und den zweiten Platz in den Countrycharts. Es war die meistverkaufte Single des Jahres 1966 in den USA.
ellauri140.html on line 226: The song was written by then Staff Sgt. Barry Sadler, beginning when he was training to be a Special Forces medic. The author Robin Moore, who wrote the book, The Green Berets, helped Sadler write the lyrics and get a recording contract with RCA Records. The demo of the song was produced in a rudimentary recording studio at Fort Bragg, with the help of Gerry Gitell and LTG William P. Yarborough.
ellauri140.html on line 398: The Eugh° obedient to the benders will, Marjakuusesta saa jouskarin,
ellauri140.html on line 518: Full of great lumpes of flesh and gobbets raw, Täynnä lihakroketteja ja raakaravintoa,
ellauri140.html on line 623: Sober he seemde, and very sagely sad, Se näytti vesiselvältä ja masixelta,
ellauri140.html on line 694: The noblest mind the best contentment has. Saa jalo nuppi, äijä höylätä.
ellauri140.html on line 807: The God obayde, and, calling forth straightway Morfeus teki työtä käskettyä, kuzui heti
ellauri140.html on line 887: Both for her noble bloud, and for her tender youth. Vetosi jaloon kumiin ja valmistuspäiväänsä.
ellauri140.html on line 930: I deeme your love, and hold me to you bound: Mä arvostan sun lempeä, ja olen muito obrigado siitä.
ellauri140.html on line 1030: Had spread her purple robe through deawy aire, Ja levitti päällensä punaisen aamutakin,
ellauri141.html on line 109: Quintus Horatius Flaccus (8th of December, Ab Urbe Condita 689, B. C. 65 - 27th of November, B. C. 8) was born at or near Venusia (Venosa), in the Apennines, on the borders of Lucania and Apulia. His father was a freedman, having, as his name proves, been the slave of some person of the Horatia gens. As Horace implies that he himself was ingenuus, his father must have obtained his freedom before his birth. He afterwards followed the calling of a coactor, a collector of money in some way or other, it is not known in what. He made, in this capacity, enough to purchase an estate, probably a small one, near the above town, where the poet was born. We hear nothing of his mother, except that Horace speaks of both his parents with affection. His father, probably seeing signs of talent in him as a child, was not content to have him educated at a provincial school, but took him (at what age he does not say, but probably about twelve) to Rome, where he became a pupil of Orbilius Pupillus, who had a school of much note, attended by boys of good family, and whom Horace remembered all his life as an irritable teacher, given unnecessarily to the use of the rod. With him he learnt grammar, the earlier Latin authors, and Homer. He attended other masters (of rhetoric, poetry, and music perhaps), as Roman boys were wont, and had the advantage (to which he afterwards looked back with gratitude) of his father’s care and moral training during this part of his education. It was usual for young men of birth and ability to be sent to Athens, to finish their education by the study of Greek literature and philosophy under native teachers; and Horace went there too, at what age is not known, but probably when he was about twenty. Whether his father was alive at that time, or dead, is uncertain. If he went to Athens at twenty, it was in B. C. 45, the year before Julius Cæsar was assassinated. After that event, Brutus and Cassius left Rome and went to Greece. Foreseeing the struggle that was before them, they got round them many of the young men at that time studying at Athens, and Horace was appointed tribune in the army of Brutus, a high command, for which he was not qualified. He went with Brutus into Asia Minor, and finally shared his defeat at Philippi, B. C. 42. He makes humorous allusion to this defeat in his Ode to Pompeius Varus (ii. 7). After the battle he came to Italy, having obtained permission to do so, like many others who were willing to give up a desperate cause and settle quietly at home. His patrimony, however, was forfeited, and he seems to have had no means of subsistence, which induced him to employ himself in writing verses, with the view, perhaps, of bringing himself into notice, rather than for the purpose of making money by their sale. By some means he managed to get a place as scriba in the Quæstor’s office, whether by purchase or interest does not appear. In either case, we must suppose he contrived soon to make friends, though he could not do so by the course he pursued, without also making many enemies. His Satires are full of allusions to the enmity his verses had raised up for him on all hands. He became acquainted, among other literary persons, with Virgil and Varius, who, about three years after his return (B. C. 39), introduced him to Mæcenas, who was careful of receiving into his circle a tribune of Brutus, and one whose writings were of a kind that was new and unpopular. He accordingly saw nothing of Horace for nine months after his introduction to him. He then sent for him (B. C. 38), and from that time continued to be his patron and warmest friend.
ellauri141.html on line 111: At his house, probably, Horace became intimate with Polio, and the many persons of consideration whose friendship he appears to have enjoyed. Through Mæcenas, also, it is probable Horace was introduced to Augustus; but when that happened is uncertain. In B. C. 37, Mæcenas was deputed by Augustus to meet M. Antonius at Brundisium, and he took Horace with him on that journey, of which a detailed account is given in the fifth Satire of the first book. Horace appears to have parted from the rest of the company at Brundisium, and perhaps returned to Rome by Tarentum and Venusia. (See S. i. 5, Introduction.) Between this journey and B. C. 32, Horace received from his friend the present of a small estate in the valley of the Digentia (Licenza), situated about thirty-four miles from Rome, and fourteen from Tibur, in the Sabine country. Of this property he gives a description in his Epistle to Quintius (i. 16), and he appears to have lived there a part of every year, and to have been fond of the place, which was very quiet and retired, being four miles from the nearest town, Varia (Vico Varo), a municipium perhaps, but not a place of any importance. During this interval he continued to write Satires and Epodes, but also, it appears probable, some of the Odes, which some years later he published, and others which he did not publish. These compositions, no doubt, were seen by his friends, and were pretty well known before any of them were collected for publication. The first book of the Satires was published probably in B. C. 35, the Epodes in B. C. 30, and the second book of Satires in the following year, when Horace was about thirty-five years old. When Augustus returned from Asia, in B. C. 29, and closed the gates of Janus, being the acknowledged head of the republic, Horace appeared among his most hearty adherents. He wrote on this occasion one of his best Odes (i. 2), and employed his pen in forwarding those reforms which it was the first object of Augustus to effect. (See Introduction to C. ii. 15.) His most striking Odes appear, for the most part, to have been written after the establishment of peace. Some may have been written before, and probably were. But for some reason it would seem that he gave himself more to lyric poetry after his thirty-fifth year than he had done before. He had most likely studied the Greek poets while he was at Athens, and some of his imitations may have been written early. If so, they were most probably improved and polished, from time to time, (for he must have had them by him, known perhaps only to a few friends, for many years,) till they became the graceful specimens of artificial composition that they are. Horace continued to employ himself in this kind of writing (on a variety of subjects, convivial, amatory, political, moral,—some original, many no doubt suggested by Greek poems) till B. C. 24, when there are reasons for thinking the first three books of the Odes were published. During this period, Horace appears to have passed his time at Rome, among the most distinguished men of the day, or at his house in the country, paying occasional visits to Tibur, Præneste, and Baiæ, with indifferent health, which required change of air. About the year B. C. 26 he was nearly killed by the falling of a tree, on his own estate, which accident he has recorded in one of his Odes (ii. 13), and occasionally refers to; once in the same stanza with a storm in which he was nearly lost off Cape Palinurus, on the western coast of Italy. When this happened, nobody knows. After the publication of the three books of Odes, Horace seems to have ceased from that style of writing, or nearly so; and the only other compositions we know of his having produced in the next few years are metrical Epistles to different friends, of which he published a volume probably in B. C. 20 or 19. He seems to have taken up the study of the Greek philosophical writers, and to have become a good deal interested in them, and also to have been a little tired of the world, and disgusted with the jealousies his reputation created. His health did not improve as he grew older, and he put himself under the care of Antonius Musa, the emperor’s new physician. By his advice he gave up, for a time at least, his favorite Baiæ. But he found it necessary to be a good deal away from Rome, especially in the autumn and winter.
ellauri141.html on line 113: In B. C. 17, Augustus celebrated the Ludi Seculares, and Horace was required to write an Ode for the occasion, which he did, and it has been preserved. This circumstance, and the credit it brought him, may have given his mind another leaning to Ode-writing, and have helped him to produce the fourth book, a few pieces in which may have been written at any time. It is said that Augustus particularly desired Horace to publish another book of Odes, in order that those he wrote upon the victories of Drusus and Tiberius (4 and 14) might appear in it. The latter of these Odes was not written, probably, till B. C. 13, when Augustus returned from Gaul. If so, the book was probably published in that year, when Horace was fifty-two. The Odes of the fourth book show no diminution of power, but the reverse. There are none in the first three books that surpass, or perhaps equal, the Ode in honor of Drusus, and few superior to that which is addressed to Lollius. The success of the first three books, and the honor of being chosen to compose the Ode at the Ludi Seculares, seem to have given him encouragement. There are no incidents in his life during the above period recorded or alluded to in his poems. He lived five years after the publication of the fourth book of Odes, if the above date be correct, and during that time, I think it probable, he wrote the Epistles to Augustus and Florus which form the second book; and having conceived the intention of writing a poem on the art and progress of poetry, he wrote as much of it as appears in the Epistle to the Pisones which has been preserved among his works. It seems, from the Epistle to Florus, that Horace at this time had to resist the urgency of friends begging him to write, one in this style and another in that, and that he had no desire to gratify them and to sacrifice his own ease to a pursuit in which it is plain he never took any great delight. He was likely to bring to it less energy as his life was drawing prematurely to a close, through infirmities either contracted or aggravated during his irrational campaigning with Brutus, his inaptitude for which he appears afterwards to have been perfectly aware of. He continued to apply himself to the study of moral philosophy till his death, which took place, according to Eusebius, on the 27th of November, B. C. 8, in the fifty-seventh year of his age, and within a few days of its completion. Mæcenas died the same year, also towards the close of it; a coincidence that has led some to the notion, that Horace hastened his own death that he might not have the pain of surviving his patron. According to Suetonius, his death (which he places after his fifty-ninth year) was so sudden, that he had not time to execute his will, which is opposed to the notion of suicide. The two friends were buried near one another “in extremis Esquiliis,” in the farthest part of the Esquiliæ, that is, probably, without the city walls, on the ground drained and laid out in gardens by Mæcenas.
ellauri141.html on line 124: Evitata rotis palmaque nobilis. 5 Slalomkeppien väistelystä, mitaleista,
ellauri141.html on line 126: Hunc si mobilium turba Quiritium Tää jos Rooman laahus kannustaa sitä hurjasti,
ellauri141.html on line 209: The obscene qualities of some of the Epodes have repulsed even scholars. Suetonius recorded some gossip about Horace's sexual activities late in life, involving mirrors. William Thackeray produced a version of Odes 1.38 in which Horace's questionable 'boy' became 'Lucy', and Gerard Manley Hopkins translated the boy "innocently" as 'child'. Horace was translated by Sir Theodore Martin (biographer of Prince Albert) but minus some ungentlemanly verses, such as the erotic Odes 1.25 and Epodes 8 and 12. Translators historically excluded the problem poems 8 and 12, but also the far less obscene but explicitly gay 11. Philip Francis (1746) and Bulwer Lytton (1870) omit the problem poems from their translations. Niin teki myös Eero Kivikari. Suuhun myös peräpäähän teitä pukkaan. Irrumabo ego vos et pedicabo. Quos ego!
ellauri141.html on line 313: mittis nec firmo iuveni neque naris obesae? & love letters? As if I’m a sturdy lad with a stuffed
ellauri141.html on line 339: "Of small stature, fond of the sun, prematurely grey, quick-tempered but easily placated". Häntä vaivasi jonkinlainen silmätauti. Luonteeltaan hän näyttää olleen vilkas, iloinen ja leikkisä vanhapoika. Äkkipikainen, suuttui helposti mutta leppyi yhtä helposti. Bilbo Hobbitin doppelgängeri. The poet died at 56 years of age, not long after his friend Maecenas [or before? Opinions vary] near whose tomb he was laid to rest.
ellauri141.html on line 356: Elementary, my dear Watson, that is what it quite obviously is.
ellauri141.html on line 357: Even a casual reader of the Odes will soon notice that sex in Horace’s poems is ambidextrous. I’m not going to presume to analyze Horace’s sexuality beyond what he tells us in the poems, but when the word puer — boy — occurs in a Horace poem, as often as not it refers to a household slave, a serving boy. And at boring times, the puer becomes an object of sexual convenience.
ellauri141.html on line 366: Adolescent slave boys were fair game for a virile man. Jupiter may have had his Ganymede, but none of the standard pantheon of gods were gay as we use the term. But there was a limit: it was queer to screw a boy after he was old enough to shave. “Passive’ homosexuality was the real disgrace. The urge to bugger was understandable. A man’s desire to be buggered was disgraceful. As often observed, it was better to give than receive. And in Horace’s poems, pederasty seems no more frowned upon than a taste for veal might be frowned upon today. Actually less. By now you can see where I’m headed with all this. I think the puer in Persicos odi, puer, apparatus... is the kind of boy that Horace is sometimes fond of screwing.
ellauri141.html on line 368: Mut näyttää vähän siltä että Horatiuxen letku ei seissyt monta hetkeä. Se ehkä selittää ezen viisujen perussävy on tollanen tekosirkeä, puoliveteinen ja letkeä. Horace’s obsessions were music, sex, death and wine and crowns made from plants.
ellauri141.html on line 388: Heus puer, digitos ex anu. St Jerome modelled an uncompromising response to the pagan Horace, observing: "What harmony can there be between Christ and the Devil? What has Horace to do with the Psalter?" The first English translator Thomas Drant placed translations of Jeremiah and Horace side by side in Medicinable Morall, 1566. The Scot George Buchanan paraphrased the Psalms in a Horatian setting. John Keats echoed the opening of Horace's Epodes 14 in the opening lines of Ode to a Nightingale. Byron's famous lines from Childe Harold (Canto iv, 77) hit it on the nail:
ellauri141.html on line 462: Kipling sai ensimmäisenä englanninkielisenä kirjailijana Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon vuonna 1907. Hän on yhä edelleen nuorin palkinnon koskaan saanut kirjailija (42v). Mikähän poliittinen tilanne oli siinä takana?
ellauri141.html on line 495: Kiplingin suosio oli huipussaan 1900–luvun alussa. Vuonna 1907 Rudyard Kipling sai kirjallisuuden Nobel-palkinnon.
ellauri141.html on line 496: Kiplingin 18-vuotias poika John Kipling kaatui syyskuussa 1915 Loosin taistelussa ensimmäisessä maailmansodassa. John oli hylätty kahdesti likinäkönsä takia, mutta brittiarmeijan ylipäällikkö ja irlantilaiskaartien eversti Roberts oli Rudyard Kiplingin henkilökohtainen hyvä ystävä. Hänen pyynnöstään John hyväksyttiin irlantilaiskaarteihin. John Kipling valmistui upseeriksi vänrikin arvolla.
ellauri141.html on line 569: The ‘editor’ of the Latin text was the clever versifier A. D. Godley of Oxford. (267) He contributed graceful acknowledgements (268) and a hilarious preface about the (fictitious) manuscripts, which parodies the standard praefatio of an Oxford Classical Text (brown-covered in those days like the spoof). (269) There is a learned apparatus criticus about disputed or variant ms. readings. He did the Latin poems, together with his Oxford colleagues and friends John Powell (270) and Ronald Knox (271) and the Etonian and former Cambridge undergraduate A. B. Ramsay. (272) There is an appendix of alternative Latin versions which the translators obviously could not bear to waste. Kipling contributed a schoolboyish prose version of ‘The Pro-consuls’: ‘the sixth ode, as it seems, rendered into English prose by a scholiast of uncertain period’, which starts:
ellauri141.html on line 630: Huntuvuoren historialliset romaanit eivät savuttaneet Mika Waltarin globaalia suosiota, mutta täysin uusi tuttavuus tämä naiskirjailija oli allekirjoittaneelle.
ellauri141.html on line 744: St. John Perse, eli mixi nobelistikynäilijöistä niin moni on perseestä
ellauri141.html on line 746: a) Koska Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinto on poliittinen propagandateko. Ruozin Akatemia on Amerikan hegemoniaa ja länkkäreiden talousliberaalien setämiesten asiaa ajava PR-toimisto. Sen rahoitti räjähdysaineilla rikastunut porho, joka edellytti palkinnon saajilta, että niiden tuotanto on toivotulla lailla "positiivista".
ellauri141.html on line 750: Hyvä esimerkki tästä on sattuvasti nimetty ranskalainen nobelisti St. John Perse. Sen tuotanto on aivan perseestä, ja silti se tuli valituxi 1960 epäilemättä pyllistyxenä Saxalle, Neuvostoliitolle, Kuuballe ja Kiinalle ja kyykistyxenä Amerikalle ja länsivalloille. Kukaan ei tiedä kaverista enää muuta kuin ton hassun nimen. Ehkä se sai palkinnon koska se oli erehdyttävästi vaalenpunaisen pantterin näkönen (siis Inspector Clouseaun eri Peter Sellersin). Paizi Sellersillä oli enemmän tukkaa jäljellä. Ja varmasti myös six eze asui jenkeissä sodan aikana ja pitkään sen jälkeenkin.
ellauri141.html on line 755: Alexis Leger (pronounced [ləʒe]; 31 May 1887 – 20 September 1975), better known by his pseudonym Saint-John Perse (French: [pɛʁs]; also Saint-Leger Leger),[1] was a French poet-diplomat, awarded the Nobel Prize in Literature in 1960 "for the soaring flight and evocative imagery of his poetry." He was a major French diplomat from 1914 to 1940, after which he lived primarily in the United States until 1967.
ellauri141.html on line 761: In 1904, he met the poet Francis Jammes at Orthez, who became a close friend. He frequented cultural clubs, and met Paul Claudel, Odilon Redon, Valery Larbaud and André Gide. Paha merkki, todellakin! He wrote short poems inspired by the story of Robinson Crusoe (Images à Crusoe) and undertook a translation of Pindar. He published his first book of poetry, Éloges, in 1911.
ellauri141.html on line 765: During his American exile, he wrote his long poems Exil, Vents, Pluies, Neiges, Amers, and Chroniques. He remained in the US long after the end of the war. He travelled extensively, observing nature and enjoying the friendship of US Attorney General Francis Biddle and his spouse, philanthropist Beatrice Chanler, and author Katherine Garrison Chapin. He was on good terms with the UN Secretary General and author Dag Hammarskjöld whose plain crashed in suspicious circumstances in 1961, just after Pink Panther got his Nobel prize. Foul play?
ellauri141.html on line 769: In 1960, he was awarded the Nobel Prize in Literature. After receiving the Nobel Prize, he wrote the long poems Chronique, Oiseaux and Chant pour un équinoxe and the shorter Nocturne and Sécheresse. In 1962, Georges Braque worked with master printmaker Aldo Crommelynck to create a series of etchings and aquatints, L'Ordre des Oiseaux, which was published with the text of Perse's Oiseaux by Au Vent d'Arles.
ellauri141.html on line 793: Francis Nigel Lee interprets Genesis 4:20 to mean that Jabal was both the "father of all cattle ranchers" and the "father of all tent-dwellers", and as such as the "pioneer of all livestock and agricultural technology" as well as the "pioneer of all architecture." Lee notes that Jabal was probably also a weaver, and thus "the pioneer of the clothing industry."
ellauri141.html on line 796: Nojoo, IV laulussa kaupunki n:o 1 perustetaan, ja siinä parasta on tyttöjen kalsongit ikkunoissa. Koirat haukkuvat, karavaani kulkee. Kaveri kylästyy taas vaan olemaan ja lähtee aamusella villihanhien mukana kuin Nils Holgersson. Kaupunkeja perustetaan vähän kaikkialle. Poeettojakin ilmestyy katukuvaan. Onkohan tää jotain kolonialistituubaa? On hienoa mennä nitistämään nomadeja, mezästäjä-keräilijöistä puhumattakaan. Kauppa se on joka kannattaa. Juu ja sitä on tarkoitus jatkaa kautta avaruuxien, kun tää pallo on puzattu. A paean for man. Voi helevetti. Tää anabasis on tota exponentiaalista kasvua, sepä tekee apinasta kuolemattoman. Voi helevetin helevetti. Ei ihme että Nobel antoi tälle palkinnon. Seleukidit mainitaan, eli kyltäs vinkataan Alexanteriin. Ne hevosenhajuiset hevoset sit varmaan tuli Xenofonilta, joka kirjoitti kirjan hevosten hoidosta. IX laulussa saadaan entistä parempia naisia, sillä ne tekee meille pentuja. Hahaa tää on aika sama teema kuin Aataminsaaren Eve Future. Ei herkullinen pano ole tärkeintä vaan pennut ovat. Tää on jostain syystä koiraiden vaikea tajuta. Stranger ei enää nouse pukille. Sille tuodaan vettä eze voi pestä suunsa, naamansa ja munansa. Sitä ei hevosenhaju enää kiinnosta.
ellauri141.html on line 798: Viimeinen tsääntti X on kaikista pitkäveteisin. Siinä saarnaajana on poeetta. Hemmetin pitkiä listoja. Paljon choseja. Hyödyttömimmät hemmot on parhaita, niikö esim poeetat, eli "kertojat". "Man's own responsibility and glory". Joopa joo. An epic of the human soul. Voi vittu mitä torttua. Inhottavaa progress potaskaa. Bernard kirjoitti tän turauxen siitä alunperin ranskaxi vuonna 1959. Pohjustikohan se tätä Noobelia? Mä menin sinä vuonna kansakoulun ekalle luokalle.
ellauri141.html on line 800: Dag Hammarskjöld was committed to the arts. Though temperamentally a loner, and introvert, and a bachelor throughout his life (oliko se homo? Det finns inga bevis för att Dag Hammarskjöld var homosexuell. Misstankar verkar dock ha funnits: Eftersom han levde ensam började rykten spridas om att han skulle vara homosexuell och hans motståndare använde detta för att smutskasta honom), he would invite intellectuals and artists, the best of New York’s bohemia, to his Upper East Side apartment where he kept a pet, an African monkey called Greenback. People he invited to his generous dinners included the poet Carl Sandburg, the novelist John Steinbeck, the poet WH Auden, the diplomat George Kennan. Auden was the translator of Hammarskjöld’s posthumously published book of observations, ideas and poems called Waymarks. Hammarskjöld used his influence to get the poet Ezra Pound out of mental hospital. Back in Sweden, he inherited his father’s chair at the Swedish academy when the man died in 1953. The Swedish academy is the body that awards the Nobel Prize in literature. Hammarskjöld was instrumental in getting the rather obscure but doubtless brilliant French poet Saint John Perse his Nobel prize in 1960. He would sketch out the arguments for Perse’s candidacy during translation breaks at UN Security Council meetings.
ellauri142.html on line 49: Count Pyotr "Markku" Kirillovich Bezukhov (/bɛ.zjuːˈkɒv/; Russian: Пьер Безу́хов, Пётр Кири́ллович Безу́хов) is a central fictional character and the main protagonist of Leo Tolstoy's 1869 novel War and Peace. He is the favourite out of several illegitimate sons of the wealthy nobleman Count Kirill Vladimirovich Bezukhov, one of the richest people in the Russian Empire. Markku is best friends with Andrei Bollocksky. Tolstoy based Markku on himself more than any other War and Peace character.
ellauri142.html on line 55: Markku's life changes after he becomes the sole heir to his father's vast estate, and his position in society is changed from that of an illegitimate son to the new Count Bezukhov. His inability to control his emotions and sexual passions lead him into a marriage with the vapid but sexually beautiful Princess Kristina, a match which her self-serving father, Prince Carl Erik, sets up to secure his access to Markku's newly acquired vast fortune. Kristina is not in love with Markku, and has affairs. From jealousy, Markku shoots his suspected lover, Dolokhov, in a duel. He is distraught at having committed such a crime and eventually separates from Kristina and then becomes a Freemason. His madhat escape into the city of Moscow and his subsequent obsessive belief that he is destined to be Napoleon’s mistress show his submission to irrational impulses. Yet his search for meaning in his life and for how to overcome his emotions are a central theme of the novel. He eventually finds love and marriage with Pirkko Hiekkala, becomes a ladies shoes salesman called Al Bundy and their marriage is perhaps the culmination of a life of moral and spiritual questioning. They have four children: three boys and one girl. Correction, one extremely good-looking platinum blonde girl and one about equally gifted son.
ellauri142.html on line 71: Count Lev Nikolayevich Tolstoy (/ˈtoʊlstɔɪ/; Russian: Лев Николаевич Толстой, 28 August 1828 – 7 November 1910), usually referred to in English as Leo Tolstoy, was a Russian writer who is regarded as one of the greatest authors of all time. He received nominations for the Nobel Prize in Literature every year from 1902 to 1906 and for the Nobel Peace Prize in 1901, 1902, and 1909. That he never won is a major controversy. Instead, Rudyard Kipling got the medal 1907. What the fuck?
ellauri142.html on line 77: The Tolstoys were a well-known family of old Russian nobility who traced their ancestry to a mythical nobleman named Indris described by Pyotr Tolstoy as arriving "from Nemec, from the lands of Caesar" (Lithuania, from the sound of it) to Chernigov in 1353 along with his two sons Litvinos (or Litvonis) and Zimonten (or Zigmont) and a dozen or maybe 3000 people. Indris was then converted to Eastern Orthodoxy, under the name of Leonty, and his sons as Konstantin and Feodor. Konstantin's grandson Andrei Kharitonovich was nicknamed Tolstoy (fatso) by Vasily II of Moscow after he moved from Chernigov to Moscow.
ellauri142.html on line 91: Prize motivation: "in consideration of the power of observation, originality of imagination, virility of ideas and remarkable talent for narration which characterize the creations of this world-famous author." As a poet, short story writer, journalist and novelist, Rudyard Kipling described the British colonial empire in positive terms, which made his poetry popular in the British Army. Contemporary Great Britain appreciated him for his depictions of the British colony of India. The Jungle Book (1894) has made him known and loved by children throughout the world, especially thanks to Disney’s 1967 film adaptation.
ellauri142.html on line 162: 1600-luvun huuhailijat Ruusuristiläiset käytti tämmöstä porsaskirjoitusta myäs. Niillä oli myös tällänen hiano mobiili temppeli:
ellauri142.html on line 167: Vittu mitä pellejä! Jo on lapsellista touhua. According to the historian David Stevenson, it was influential on Freemasonry as it was emerging in Scotland. Robert Vanloo (n.h.) states that earlier 17th century Rosicrucianism had a considerable influence on Anglo-Saxon Masonry. Hans Schick sees in the works of Comenius (1592–1670) the ideal of the newly born English Masonry before the foundation of the Grand Lodge in 1717. Comenius was in England during 1641. Their mission is to prepare the whole wide world for a new phase in religion, which includes awareness of the inner worlds and the subtle bodies, and to provide safe guidance in the gradual awakening of man's latent spiritual faculties during the next six centuries toward the coming Age of Aquariums. This is the dawning of it, judging by the sea levels. According to Masonic writers, the Order of the Rose Cross is expounded in a major Christian literary work that molded the subsequent spiritual beliefs of western civilization: The Divine Comedy (ca. 1308–1321) by Dante Alighieri.
ellauri142.html on line 429: (Ristin Pobeda)
ellauri142.html on line 447: Niin kauan kuin elämme maailmassa, emme voi olla ilman oikeudenkäyntiä ja kiusausta. Siksi jobin kirjassa sanotaan: Apina taistelee maan päällä, apina jonka nahkaa tarkkailtiin kiusauksissa ja kasteltiin rukouksissa, niin että paholainen suorastaan väsähti.
ellauri142.html on line 574: Tässä luvussa on paljon tota narsismia, et mähän oon izekin joku Jumala. Kaiken alkuperusta. Siitä ei ole epäilystä. ”Siinä ei auta mikään etsiminen, tutkiminen ja tiedusteleminen, sillä jokaisen henki näkee ainoastaan oman sisimpänsä, sekä siinä sen, mikä häntä innostaa.” (Jakob Böhme, Sendbriefe, 11. 3.) Jumala ei rakasta muuta kuin itseään. (Eckhart)
ellauri142.html on line 611: Starting either from religious belief or from science, Spencer argued, we are ultimately driven to accept certain indispensable but literally inconceivable notions. Whether we are concerned with a Creator or the substratum which underlies our experience of phenomena, we can frame no conception of it. Therefore, Spencer concluded, religion and science agree in the supreme truth that the human understanding is only capable of 'relative' knowledge. This is the case since, owing to the inherent limitations of the human mind, it is only possible to obtain knowledge of phenomena, not of the reality ('the absolute') underlying phenomena. Hence both science and religion must come to recognise as the 'most certain of all facts that the Power which the Universe manifests to us is utterly inscrutable.' He called this awareness of 'the Unknowable' and he presented worship of the Unknowable as capable of being a positive faith which could substitute for conventional religion. Indeed, he thought that the Unknowable represented the ultimate stage in the evolution of religion, the final elimination of its last anthropomorphic vestiges.
ellauri142.html on line 759: Piereskelyn avulla meille ilmenee luonto ikään kuin kuviteltuna persoonana. Tätä kuvitteellista persoonaa nimitetään Isäksi. Isällä siis kädetetään siedätystä, jolla taas on puhdas, korkea, izesaastuttamaton jumalaton kärki. Tämä kärki hajuaa ja ikään kuin katsoo oman läpensä läpitte. Tämän saastuttamattoman kärjen objektiivinen kohde on ’Poika’ eli ’poika, sano’ (Logo). Isän ja pojan välillä oleva ikuinen edestakainen sisään ulos suhde toinen toiseensa, eli toisin sanoen runkkaus on pyhä henki.” (Eckhart: Tätä asiaa pitää tarkasti miettiä, ennen kuin sen käsittää.)
ellauri142.html on line 833: eikä tunteiden haaveiluissa elämistä; oikea usko on henkistä elämää. Obscurum per obscurius. Kai tää koittaa sanoa että se on oikeammin asenne. Mennään tilanteisiin asenne edellä.
ellauri142.html on line 862: Täydellisesti pyhitetyn toiminta on persoonatonta; hänen yksilöllinen persoonallisuutensa on ainoastaan näennäinen. Hän on oikeasti henkimaailman robotti. Vaikuttaa aika mukavalta veikolta. (Veikkohan se aina on, vai mitä? Sisaret älkööt vaivautuko. Siskot, veikot, barrikaadeille.
ellauri142.html on line 925: DODI, nyt selviää mihin tällä kaikella oikein pyritään: Kastien tehtävien jako pistevieraasti. Suutari pysyköön lestistään, älköönkä yhtään yrittäkö snobbailla. A good wife knows her place. Parempi on, vaikka heikoillakin voimilla täyttää oman velvollisuutensa kuin toiselle määrätty toimi, olkoon sen toimittaminen kuinka helppoa tahansa. Se joka täyttää sen velvollisuuden, jonka hänen oma luonteensa hänelle määrää, ei tee syntiä. No niimpä tietysti. Vittu et tää on läpinäkyvää!
ellauri142.html on line 997: Ja vielä teosofisen seuran sinetti, plus legenda: Symboli on jonkin käsitteen näkyvä vertauskuva. Tällaiset vertauskuvat ovat yhtä vanhoja kuin ihmiskuntakin. Jokaisella tieteellä, kauppahuoneella ym. laitoksella ovat omat logonsa. Näinä aikoina, jolloin kirjaimet ja kirjoitustaito ovat tuiki tuntemattomat, ovat tällaiset vertauskuvat erittäin suuresta arvosta. Nyt käytetään niin paljon ikoneja, että niistä aikaa voittaen kehittyy kokonainen kuvakirjoitus. Kaikki mobiilit
ellauri142.html on line 1045: Smail wrote several books on the subject of psychotherapy, emphasizing the extent to which society is often responsible for personal distress. Critical of the claims made by psychotherapy, he suggests that it only works to the extent that the therapist becomes a friend of the patient, providing encouragement and support. Much distress, he says, results from current conflicts, not past ones, and in any case, damage done probably cannot be undone, though we may learn to live with it. He doubts whether 'catharsis', the process whereby it is supposed that understanding past events makes them less painful, really works. The assumption that depression, or any other form of mental distress, is caused by something within the person that can be fixed, is he argued, without foundation. He could thus be regarded as part of the 'anti-psychiatry' movement, along with R.D. Laing and Thomas Szasz, but where Laing emphasised family nexus as making psychosis understandable, Smail emphasises 'Interest' and power in relation to more everyday distress. These are integral to Western society, and, he suggests, considered out of bounds by most psychotherapists, who are themselves both constrained and complicit in protecting their own interests.
ellauri143.html on line 233: Decorum's true nobility on earth;
ellauri143.html on line 234: Indecorum's issue is ignoble birth.
ellauri143.html on line 653: He sees the world obedient all to his command.
ellauri143.html on line 664: Lower are men unlearned, though noble be their race,
ellauri143.html on line 673: Then in obedience meet to lessons learnt remain.
ellauri143.html on line 705: Are like the happy gods oblations rich who share.
ellauri143.html on line 856: Kinkun apurit. Explanation : Let (a minister) be chosen, after he has been tried by means of these four things, viz,-his virtue, (love of) money, (love of) sexual pleasure, and tear of (losing) life. And keep his relatives as hostages. Just tätä tematiikkaa oli valtaistuinpeleissä. Ei se ole vierasta kv. yrityxillekään. Steve Jobs varmaan luki näitä värssyjä. The Thirukkural way of Leadership. Mr. T. Kannan.
ellauri143.html on line 860: Of noble race, of faultless worth, of generous pride
ellauri143.html on line 906: As ´Give´ the robber cries with lance uplift,
ellauri143.html on line 1046: In councils of the mean, let them say nought, e´en in oblivious hour.
ellauri143.html on line 1105: By them the other two are easily obtained.
ellauri143.html on line 1221: Explanation : (A) pleasing (object) to his foes is he who reads not moral works, does nothing that is enjoined by them cares not for reproach and is not possessed of good qualities.
ellauri143.html on line 1262: Who give their soul to love of wife acquire not nobler gain;
ellauri143.html on line 1266: Who gives himself to love of wife, careless of noble name
ellauri143.html on line 1287: With them who live obedient to their wives' behests.
ellauri143.html on line 1304: Save in the scions of a noble house, you never find
ellauri143.html on line 1309: These are the signs, they say, of true nobility.
ellauri143.html on line 1358: Näillä tienoilla annetaan läpyja inhokkikäsitteille dignity ja sen vastakohta modesty. Mitä se on? The quality or state of being worthy of esteem or respect. Inherent nobility and worth. Poise and self-respect. The quality or state of being unassuming in the estimation of one's abilities. Propriety in dress, speech, or conduct.
ellauri143.html on line 1415: Explanation : Even thin gruel is ambrosia to him who has obtained it by labour.
ellauri143.html on line 1542: Explanation : There is nothing so noble as the womanly nature that would not ride the palmyra horse, though plunged a sea of lust. That is, she is quite happy just riding me.
ellauri143.html on line 1718: Levitaatio on ennen kaikkea mielen tyhjentämistä ajatuksista, mikä saavutetaan pysyttelemällä keskittyneesti nykyhetkessä jonkin toiminnan tai muun menetelmän avulla. Levitaatio yhdistää tiukan keskittymisen rentoutumiseen. Levitoija keskittyy intensiivisesti esimerkiksi kännykän soittoääneen tai kissavideoon, jonka seurauksena mieli tyhjentyy ajatuksista, stressistä ja levottomuudesta. Levitoinnin aikana levitoija tarkastelee omaa napaansa tai persettään objektiivisesti hukkumatta tai samaistumatta niihin.
ellauri144.html on line 123: Mutta onko Clarxon homo? Ainaskin se on aivan vitun homofoobi, joka on vahva vihje kaappihomosta. (Ei koske minua, I refuse to be bummed.) The Amazon Prime show sees presenters Jeremy Clarkson, Richard Hammond and James May travel the world reviewing cars. The Ofcom complaint comes after Young took issue with a comment in one of the episodes in which the trio made jokes about the Wrangler Jeep being a ‘gay man’s car’..... and then Hammond and May’s ‘quips’ to Clarkson wearing chaps, a pink shirt, he should get some moisturiser. It’s fucking pathetic and actually homophobic. Jeremy Clarkson: I’m not homophobic, I enjoy watching lesbians on the internet.
ellauri144.html on line 125: Clarkson was nominated for Stonewall’s Bigot of the Year award in 2007 for refusing to apologise for using homophobic slurs on Top Gear.
ellauri144.html on line 158: No loppuihan se shtuppiminen sitten Pepultakin. Muttei tullut Noobelia, eikä lasta eikä paskaakaan, jos näät isän ongelma oli periytynyt. Varmaan Philin vazalaukkuun eksynyt vasen kives oli nyrjähtänyt U-käännöxessä. Koko mies kääntyi sitten vanhemmiten kivexensä perässä vasemmalta aika oikealle. Mutta kyltää Portnoyn tauti on Phillun paras kirja. Tässä ei vielä tiedetty että tätä samaa se tulee jankuttamaan koko loppuajan kerta kerralta yhä happamempana.
ellauri144.html on line 201: Paul Robeson otti poliittisesti kantaa ja tuki esimerkiksi Walesin kaivostyöläisiä. Hän myös puhui Neuvostoliiton ja erityisesti Josif Stalinin puolesta, mikä on herättänyt paljon kritiikkiä Britanniassa ja Yhdysvalloissa. Hän toimi hyvin voimakkaasti rotuerottelua vastaan, mutta 1950-luvulla hänen esiintymisensä nostattivat väkivaltaisuuksia, joiden takana olivat oikeistolaiset voimat. Niin aina.
ellauri144.html on line 203: Robesonin levyt vedettiin markkinoilta, eikä elokuvia, joissa hän näytteli, esitetty. Hän joutui myös FBI:n hampaisiin, ja epäamerikkalaista toimintaa tutkiva komitea kuulusteli häntä 1956 epäiltynä kommunistipuolueeseen kuulumisesta. Vuonna 1950 hänelle asetettiin matkustuskielto, eikä hän saanut passia ennen kuin 1958. Hän muutti Britanniaan ja kiersi runsaasti esiintymässä. Robeson yritti itsemurhaa moskovalaisessa hotellihuoneessa. Hänen poikansa oli sitä mieltä, että syynä oli FBI, joka oli sekoittanut hallusinogeenia hänen juomaansa. Vuonna 1963 hän palasi Yhdysvaltoihin, mutta huonon terveyden vuoksi hän ei juuri enää esiintynyt. Vuodesta 1978 alkaen hänen elokuviaan on jälleen esitetty.
ellauri144.html on line 205: Robesonin muistelmat Here I Stand ilmestyivät Britanniassa 1958. Robesonille on myönnetty Spingarn-mitali ja Leninin kansainvälinen rauhanpalkinto
ellauri144.html on line 207: Callella oli levyllinen Paul Robesonin negrospirituaaleja josta mä tykkäsin kovasti. Robeson laulaa kiinan kansallishymnin "Vapaaehtoisten marssi" äkeästi kiinaxi luntaten kiinalaiset sanat paperilapulta. Kommunistinuoruudessaan Phillu Roth tykkäs siitä kovasti, koska sen toisessa säkeistössä kuulemma lauletaan vihaisesti Suu-uu-ttu-mus! Se on kuin Pirkko, iloinen kun saa suuttua.
ellauri144.html on line 319: He eventually dropped out of high school, and worked at a variety of jobs, including shoe salesman and store window decorator. One of his first jobs was as a soda jerk. When the drugstore went out of business, Todd had acquired enough medical knowledge from his work there to be hired at Chicago's Michael Reese Hospital as a type of "security guard" to stop visitors from bringing in food that was not on the patient's diet.
ellauri144.html on line 327: In June 1977, Avrom's remains were desecrated by graverobbers. The thieves broke into his casket looking for a $100,000 diamond ring, which, according to rumor, Taylor had placed on her husband's finger prior to his burial. The bag containing Avrom's remains was found under a tree near his burial plot. The bag and casket had been sealed in Albuquerque after Avrom's remains were identified following the 1958 crash. Avrom''s remains were once more identified through dental records and were reburied in a secret location.
ellauri144.html on line 379: Dylan vaan ei Bob
ellauri144.html on line 421: Dylan Marlais Thomas (27 October 1914 – 9 November 1953 = 39v) was a Welsh poet and writer whose works include the poems "Do not go gentle into that good night" (Josta suomenruozalainen leijakirjailija otti "Älä mene yxin yöllä ulos") and "And death shall have no dominion"; the "play for voices" Under Milk Wood; and stories and radio broadcasts such as A Child´s Christmas in Wales and Portrait of the Artist as a Young Dog. He became widely popular in his lifetime and remained so after his death at the age of 39 in New York City. By then he had acquired a reputation, which he had encouraged, as a "roistering, drunken and doomed poet".
ellauri144.html on line 423: Dylan Thomas was born on 27 October 1914 in Swansea, the son of Florence Hannah (née Williams; 1882–1958), a seamstress, and David John Thomas (1876–1952), a teacher. His father had a first-class honours degree in English from University College, Aberystwyth and ambitions to rise above his position teaching English literature at the local grammar school, which he never did. Thomas had one sibling, Nancy Marles (1906–1953), who was eight years his senior. The children spoke only English, though their parents were bilingual in English and Welsh, and David Thomas gave Welsh lessons at home. Thomas´s father chose the name Dylan, which could be translated as "son of the sea", after Dylan ail Don, a character in The Mabinogion. (Mulla on se, mutten ole lukenut.) His middle name, Marlais, was given in honour of his great-uncle, William Thomas, a Unitarian minister and poet whose bardic name was Gwilym Marles. Se oli se silverbäk jota ne kaikki koittivat apinoida. Dylan, pronounced ˈ [ˈdəlan] (Dull-an) in Welsh, caused his mother to worry that he might be teased as the "dull one" (which he was). When he broadcast on Welsh BBC, early in his career, he was introduced using this pronunciation. Thomas favoured the Anglicised pronunciation and gave instructions that it should be Dillan /ˈdɪlən/. He was fed up with the "dull one" joke. in 1914. In 1931, when he was 16, Thomas, an undistinguished pupil, left school to become a reporter for the South Wales Daily Post, only to leave under pressure 18 months later.
ellauri144.html on line 489: Henok, Nooa, Abraham, Iisak ja Jaakob
ellauri144.html on line 493: Rehabeam ja Jerobeam
ellauri144.html on line 520: HBL on oikeastaan aivan liian patakonservatiivinen mun makuuni. Samassa numerossa jossa Renén paranoidi kauppakillan esitelmä julkaistiin, väänsi joku hoblan urheilutoimittaja erittäinkin suuren tortun siitä kuinka miehet on anuxesta ja naiset perseestä, ja kuinka naisten syrjimisen oikaisemisexi ei sunkaan pidä mennä näpelöimään tuplastandardoituja normeja. Kyllä ne vanhat toimivat paremmin kuin kivespussillinen uusia, nehän on kaikki Darwinilta peräisin. Älkää menkö ollenkaan nyt sähläämään. Miehet kazoo jääkiekkoa ja naiset laittaa irtoripsiä, se on vaan luonnollista. Naturalia non sunt turpia.
ellauri144.html on line 581: Like Poe, Bierce professed to be mainly concerned with the artistry of his work, yet critics find him more intent on conveying his misanthropy and pessimism. His bare, economical style of supernatural horror is usually distinguished from the verbally lavish tales of Poe. In his lifetime, Bierce was famous as a California journalist dedicated to exposing the truth as he understood it, regardless of whose reputations were harmed by his attacks. For his sardonic wit and damning observations on the personalities and events of the day, he became known as "the wickedest man in San Francisco." Tälläisiä löytyy Ambrosen pirun raamatusta:
ellauri144.html on line 589: Corporation. An ingenious device for obtaining individual profit without individual responsibility.
ellauri144.html on line 635: obtient enfin les financements nécessaires à la poursuite de ses travaux. Commence
ellauri144.html on line 731: Olipa taas kerta kaikkiaan paxua paskanjauhantaa Suomen Uupperalta. New Yorkerin partapozolla on täysi syy olla tyytyväinen tähän suorituxeen. Ryssäviha, Ukraina ja kukkahattueläinsuojelu samassa rintamassa niinkuin luoja on sen tarkoittanut. LOL, luonnonvaraisille eläimille on Tshernobylin epähuomiossa syntynyt ihmisiltä vapaa villiinnytysalue ollut herran lahja. Lisää tällästä, ja suuremmat lusikat, ne huutaa kuorossa.
ellauri144.html on line 740: Huan Ramon Himénez sensijaan on espanjalainen lyyrikko, joka sai 1956 Nobelin palkinnon joxeenkin olemattomista ansioista. Yksi Jimenezin tärkeimmistä panoksista moderniin runouteen oli hänen kannatuksensa "puhtaan runouden" käsitteelle. Jotain tollasta l'art pour l'art varmaan taas, keskuslyriikkaa. Hän opiskeli San Luis Gonzagan jesuiittalaitoksessa El Puerto de Santa Maríassa, lähellä Cádizia. Myöhemmin hän opiskeli lakia ja maalausta Sevillan yliopistossa, mutta pian hän huomasi, että hänen kykynsä viittasivat paremminkin kynäilyyn. Sitten hän omistautui Rubén Daríon vaikuttamalle kirjallisuudelle ja simbolismille. Hän julkaisi kaksi ensimmäistä kirjaansa 18-vuotiaana vuonna 1900.
ellauri144.html on line 746: Ensimmäisen "herkän" vaiheen teokset syntyivät kotiseudulla Espanjassa. Toinen "älyllinen" vaihe alkoi, kun Himénez matkusti New Yorkiin mennäkseen naimisiin kääntäjä Zenobia Camprubín kanssa ja vietti tämän kanssa pitkän kuherruskuukauden, jonka aikana nuori vaimo (joka oli myöskin runoilija, espanjansi valitettavasti Tagoren lurituxia) luki Himenezille amerikkalaisen runouden espanjankielisiä käännöksiä. Kolmas "ärhäkkä" vaihe alkoi Espanjan sisällissodan aikana, kun Himénez muutti ulkomaille. Hän asui ensin Kuubassa ja myöhemmin Puerto Ricossa. Mexicon sotaministeri Don Jimenez Faria oli ärhäkkä ukko hänkin.
ellauri144.html on line 819: a mi pobre enamorada. mun kultaparalle.
ellauri144.html on line 834: sobre las rosas amarillas! keltaisilla ruusuilla!
ellauri144.html on line 851: de tus axilas, fina, dulce sobre lo blanco. on sun kainalokarvat, mustaa valkoisella.
ellauri144.html on line 858: ¡Oh, qué desdoblamiento de cosas! Oho mikä asioiden avaus!
ellauri144.html on line 868: Platero kaj mi estas la plej populara verko de la poeto, estis ofte eldonita (ekzemple kiel porinfana literaturo kvankam la verko mem ne estas tio), tradukita al multaj lingvoj kaj konvertita en ĉefa kultura elemento de la devenloko Moguer, kie estas muzea domo Casa Museo Zenobia y Juan Ramón Jiménez kiu ekspozicias multajn tradukojn, inter kiuj la esperantlingvan.
ellauri144.html on line 941: Huan kuoli 2v kuluttua Noobelista 2v vanhemman Zenobian leskenä. Eipä tainnut ehtiä enää paljon nauttimaan avoimista ovista.
ellauri145.html on line 66: Arthur Rimbaud’n mielestä ”Le vrai bateau est ivre” eli tosi elämä on poissa vintiltä. Breton yhtyi Rimbaud’n näkemykseen ja halusi palauttaa elämään siitä puuttuneen rakkauden. Vuonna 1928 Breton julkaisi puolittain omaelämäkerrallisen romaanin Nadja, joka alkaa kysymyksellä: ”Kuka minä olen?” ja samoin päättyy oman identiteetin etsintään. Nadja Nadja soromnoo. Mihkähän mä se jätin? Ruhtinas Hiirulainen vei. Breton soveltaa teoksessa ”objektiivisen sattuman” metodiaan. Romaanin kertoja tapaa Nadjan, oudon eteerisen naisen, jonka mielenterveys järkkyy. Nadja elää omissa maailmoissaan ja päätyy lopulta mielisairaalaan. Romaanin kaikki ulkoinen tapahtumapaikkojen kuvaus on korvattu valokuvilla, tauluilla ja piirroksilla. Mitä pelleilyä. Breton ei olis löytänyt omaa persettään edes sähkölampun valossa. Pompeijin viimeiset päivät kirjotti sama Bulwer-Lytton joka väsäsi Ressun romskun alun koirankopin katolla. Elokuvassa pääosaa näyttelee yhdysvaltalainen kehonrakentaja Steve Reeves. Ohjelman kazeluaika Areenalla on päättynyt. Nyyh. Sen olis saanut kirjamessuilta mutta oli liian kallis.
ellauri145.html on line 104: Juhani Ihanus, FT (s. 8. toukokuuta 1954 Helsinki) on kulttuuripsykologian dosentti Helsingin yliopistossa, taidekasvatuksen ja taidepsykologian dosentti Aalto-yliopistossa sekä aate- ja oppihistorian dosentti Oulun yliopistossa. Hän on toiminut Helsingin yliopistossa vuodesta 1982 lähtien useissa opettaja- ja tutkijatehtävissä. Nähtävästi elinkautinen keskinkertaisuus kuten Lichtenberg. Ihanus on eurooppalaisen kirjallisuusterapian pioneereja. „Unsere Erde ist vielleicht ein Weibchen.“ „Wir fressen einander nicht, wir schlachten uns bloß.“ „Der Amerikaner, der den Kolumbus zuerst entdeckte, machte eine böse Entdeckung.“ Ihan näppäriä, muttei näillä kuuhun mennä. Silti Goethe kehui Joria taikasauvaxi, Kant alleviivas punasella sen kaikki töräyxet, ja Koala-vaari piti sitä izenäisenä ajattelijana. Tolstoinkin mielestä Lichtenberg oli parempi töräyttelijä kuin koketti följetongisti Nietzsche. Georg oli pedofiili, alkoi shtuppia 12-vuotiasta tyttöä v. 1777. Ikävä kyllä Lolita kuoli (varmaan johkin sexitautiin) 5 vuotta myöhemmin. Jostain syystä Jori digas Jacob Böhmeä. Ällöttävä Max Ernst piti Joria verrattomana huromistina. Seuraavasta penseestä mä voisin ottaa opixeni: Le degré le plus haut jusqu´où puisse s´élever un esprit mediocre, mais pourvu d´expérience, c´est le talent de decouvrir les faiblesses des hommes qui valent mieux que lui. Tässä ei ollut mitään hahatettavaa, vaikka tikulla olis kaivanut.
ellauri145.html on line 110: As a traveling salesman and correspondence clerk, his research and thought was time-limited: he complained of "serving the knavery of merchants" and the stupefaction of "deceitful and degrading duties." Fourier produced most of his writings between 1816 and 1821. In 1822, he tried to sell his books again but with no success. Jobs people might not enjoy doing would receive higher pay. Fourier considered trade, which he associated with Jews, to be the "source of all evil" and advocated that Jews be forced to perform farm work in the phalansteries or else sent back to The Philistines with Rotschild money. Fourier´s contempt for the respectable thinkers and ideologies of his age was so intense that he always used the terms philosopher and civilization in a pejorative sense.
ellauri145.html on line 112: Fourier was also a supporter of women´s rights in a time period when misogynic influences like Jean-Jacques Rousseau were prevalent. Fourier is credited with having originated the word feminism in 1837. Fourier believed that all important jobs should be open to women on the basis of skill and aptitude rather than closed on account of gender. He spoke of women as individuals, not as half the human couple. Fourier saw that "traditional" marriage could potentially hurt woman´s rights as human beings and thus never married. Writing before the advent of the term ´homosexuality´, Fourier held that both men and women have a wide range of sexual needs and preferences which may change throughout their lives, including same-sex sexuality and androgénité. He argued that all sexual expressions should be enjoyed as long as people are not abused, and that "affirming one´s difference" can actually enhance social integration. Stark raving mad, he was!
ellauri145.html on line 114: Baudelairen mielestä tärisevä Swedenborg oli vielä suurempi sekobolzi kuin Fourier. Swedenborgin mielestä taivas oli "un tres grande homme". Callella saattoi olla poinzi siellä. Jonkun muun ruukkupään mielestä luonto oli verbi.
ellauri145.html on line 179: Edgar Allan Poe: The Angel of the Odd. Oudosti Antero ottaa mukaan toisen spugen Baudelairen ranskannoxesta vaan pätkän tekohauskasti saxaa murtavan bisarrin enkelin puhetta. Onxtää vaan jotain anglosaxeille ja frogeille yhteistä teutonifobiaa?
ellauri145.html on line 220: En seconde, il obtient le deuxième prix de vers latins au concours général.
ellauri145.html on line 233: Dandy endetté, Baudelaire est placé sous tutelle judiciaire et mène dès 1842 une vie dissolue. Il commence alors à composer plusieurs poèmes des Fleurs du mal. Critique d´art et journaliste, il défend Delacroix comme représentant du romantisme en peinture, mais aussi Balzac lorsque l´auteur de La Comédie humaine est attaqué et caricaturé pour sa passion des chiffres ou sa perversité présumée. En 1843, il découvre les « paradis artificiels » dans le grenier de l´appartement familial de son ami Louis Ménard, où il goûte à la confiture verte. Même s´il contracte une colique à cette occasion, cette expérience semble décupler sa créativité (il dessine son autoportrait en pied, très démesuré) et renouvellera cette expérience occasionnellement sous contrôle médical, en participant aux réunions du « club des Haschischins ». En revanche, son usage de l´opium est plus long : il fait d´abord, dès 1847, un usage thérapeutique du laudanum17, prescrit pour combattre des maux de tête et des douleurs intestinales consécutives à une syphilis, probablement contractée vers 1840 durant sa relation avec la prostituée Sarah la Louchette. Comme De Quincey avant lui, l´accoutumance lui dicte d´augmenter progressivement les doses. Croyant ainsi y trouver un adjuvant créatif, il en décrira les enchantements et les tortures.
ellauri145.html on line 244: En 1848, il participe aux barricades. La révolution de février instituant la liberté de la presse, Baudelaire fonde l´éphémère gazette Le Salut public (d´obédience résolument républicaine), qui ne va pas au-delà du deuxième numéro.
ellauri145.html on line 251: L´HUMOUR chez Baudelaire fait partie intégrante de sa conception du dandysme. On sait que, pour lui, « le mot dandy implique une quintessence de caractère et une intelligence subtile de tout le mécanisme moral de ce monde ». L´humour, nul plus que lui n´a pris soin de le définir par opposition à la gaieté triviale ou au sarcasme grimaçant dans les quels se plaît à se reconnaître l´« esprit français ». Il place Molière en tête des « religions modernes ridicules»; Voltaire, c´est « l´antipoète, le roi des badauds, le prince des superficiels, l´antiartiste, le prédicateur des concierges, le père Gigogne des rédacteurs du Siècle ». Le dandy est partagé entre le souci narcissique de ses attitudes et de ses actes («Il doit aspirer à être sublime sans interruption. Il doit vivre et mourir devant son miroir ») et le désir de provoquer sur son passage une longue rumeur désapprobatrice (« Ce qu´il y a d´enivrant dans le mauvais goût, c´est le plaisir aristocratique
ellauri145.html on line 259: Fin de sieclen snobismi ei eroa missään suhteessa Emily in Parisin vastaavasta. Elle est aujourd'hui wagnerienne, esoterique, neo-platonicienne, occultiste, androgyne, primitive, baudelairienne, morbide, nietzscheenne meme quand elle eternue. Ei ois kannattanut hävitä 1870 sotaa preussilaisille.
ellauri145.html on line 400: Lewis Carroll: Lobster Quadrille. Lewis Carrollin main claim to fame Bretonin mustan huumorin kirjassa on ezen Hunting of The Snark (Jabberwockyn ´twas brillig and the slithe momes jatko-osa) ilmestyi samana vuonna kuin presubrealisti Lautremontin Pahanhajuiset laulut (joista enemmän alla). Tähän niteeseen on Antero jostain syystä ottanut Liisan Ihmemaassa Osterien laulun; outoa sikäli, että se on oikeasti melko hauska.
ellauri145.html on line 404: Roger Tichborne, heir to the noble and filthy rich Tichborne family´s title and fortunes, was presumed to have died in a shipwreck in 1854 at age 25. His mother clung to a belief that he might have survived, and after hearing rumours that he had made his way to Australia, she advertised extensively in Australian newspapers, offering a reward for information. In 1866, a Wagga Wagga butcher known as Thomas Castro came forward claiming to be Roger Tichborne. Although his manners and bearing were unrefined, he gathered support and travelled to England. He was instantly accepted by Lady Tichborne as her son, although other family members were dismissive and sought to expose him as an impostor. During protracted enquiries before the case went to court in 1871, details emerged suggesting that the claimant might be Arthur Orton, a butcher´s son from Wapping in London, who had gone to sea as a boy and had last been heard of in Australia. After a civil court had rejected the claimant´s case, he was charged with perjury; while awaiting trial he campaigned throughout the country to gain popular support. In 1874, a criminal court jury decided that he was not Roger Tichborne and declared him to be Arthur Orton. Before passing a sentence of 14 years, the judge condemned the behaviour of the claimant´s counsel, Edward Kenealy, who was subsequently disbarred because of his conduct.
ellauri145.html on line 436: Charles Cros Émile-Hortensius-Charles Cros (October 1, 1842 – August 9, 1888) was a French poet and inventor. He was born in Fabrezan, Aude, France, 35 km to the East of Carcassonne. Cros was a well-regarded poet and humorous writer. He developed various improved methods of photography including an early color photo process. He also invented improvements in telegraph technology. In the early 1870s Cros had published with Mallarmé, Villiers and Verlaine in the short-lived weekly Renaissance littéraire et artistique, edited by Emile Blémont. His poem The Kippered Herring inspired Ernest Coquelin to create what he called monologues, short theatrical pieces whose format was copied by numerous imitators. The piece, translated as The Salt Herring, was translated and illustrated by Edward Gorey. He spent years petitioning the French government to build a giant mirror that could be used to communicate with the Martians and Venusians by burning giant lines on the deserts of those planets. He was never convinced that the Martians were not a proven fact, nor that the mirror he wanted was technically impossible to build. Tästä hepusta tulee mieleen Spede Pasanen ja sen hiihtolinko.
ellauri145.html on line 498: Friedrich Nietzsche: Letter to Jacob Burckhardt (also published in The Portable Nietzsche)
ellauri145.html on line 519: His sister Elisabeth held fascist views. She published an unreliable biography of him and delayed publication of his autobiography, Ecce Homo, until she had deleted all the uncomplimentary references to herself.
ellauri145.html on line 535: Intellectuals very often have an image the same way rock stars and movie directors do. There’s the real person, and there’s the body of work they create, and then there’s the image, the popular conception of that person. Most people don’t understand theoretical physics and are not interested in learning the math to do so, and most people probably wouldn’t understand anything in the papers that Hawking has authored or co-authored. But most of us know who Hawking was, not only because he wrote popular books but because he was paralyzed and sat in a wheelchair and had a robot voice. The idea of a theoretical physicist who does all his work with his brain even though his body is destroyed and speaks through a machine is almost like a comic book character, and the popular imagination loves that.
ellauri145.html on line 541: Now, this is perhaps not quite fair to all the teenagers who read Nietzsche. Some of them may actually understand him, at least partially, including the long-haired leather jacket-wearing ones. And there really is a little blood and thunder in Nietzsche’s philosophy, a little punk rock. Regardless, the popular image is probably a bigger driver for book sales of Nietzsche’s work than anything he actually said or any point he actually made.
ellauri145.html on line 545: The answer to this is very simple. Utilitarianism is concerned only with the volume of pleasure and pain, and Nietzsche says in so many words that as soon as you even enter into this kind of thinking, you are already deep into the territory of nihilism. It is passive; concerned with high maintenance, not constructivism; aloof or indifferent to meaning, something to justify the effort in the first place, even when it is successful, let alone when it isn’t. It is the staid, kindly, sober—not to say, the British—version of the same imbecilic nihilism that was prevailing on the continent in the same era. Mill did not understand the difference between pleasure and (counterfactual) happiness, between pain and suffering, between real (spiritual) slavery and freedom. Eli koska se oli säälittävä mursuwiixinen luuseri.
ellauri145.html on line 601: Maailmaan laittamistani lapsistakin puntaroin koko lailla epäröiden, josko kaikki ”Jumalan valtakuntaan” tulevat myös tulevat Jumalasta11. Tänä syksynä menin mahdollisimman vähissä vaatteissa kahdesti omiin hautajaisiini, ensin kreivi Robilantina (ei – hän on poikani, siinä missä minä olen luontoni pohjalta Carlo Alberto), mutta minä itse olin Antonelli12. Rakas herra professori, teidän pitäisi nähdä tämä rakennelma13. Koska olen täysin kokematon seikoissa, jotka luon, teille kuulukoon kaikki kritiikki, olen kiitollinen voimatta luvata hyötyväni. Me artistit olemme opettamattomissa. – Tänään katselin – henkevänmaurilaista – operettiani, tyydytyksekseni totesin tässäkin tilaisuudessa, että nyt ovat Moskova yhtä hyvin kuin Roomakin grandiööseja asioita14. Ymmärrättehän, maisemaakaan varten ei minulta puutu lahjakkuutta.
ellauri145.html on line 623: 3 Kirje on osoitettu kotikaupunkinsa Baselin yliopistossa historian ja taidehistorian professorina 1858–1893 vaikuttaneelle Jacob Burckhardtille (1818–1897), johon Nietzsche oli tutustunut toimittuaan Baselissa klassisen fi lologian professorina 1869–1879. Burckhardt antoi kirjeen Overbeckille, joka tajusi heti asioiden olevan huonosti.
ellauri145.html on line 642: 12 Torinolaissyntyinen Carlo Felice Nicolis (1826–1888) eli kreivi Robilant oli Sardinia(-Piemonte)n kuninkaan Carlo Alberton (1798–1849; vallassa 1831– 1849) alaisena työskennellyt diplomaatti.
ellauri145.html on line 644: Nietzsche seurasi Torinossa vaikuttuneena Robilantin ja Antonellin sekä Carignanon prinssin, Carlo Alberton serkun Eugenio di Savoia-Villafrancan (1818–1888) hautajaiskulkueita.
ellauri145.html on line 707: Durtal admires the documentation of Naturalism, yet wants to open it to the supernatural, to an exploration of both body and spirit: it will be a kind of “naturalisme spiritualiste” that will follow Zola’s route, but in the air.6 This tension between realism and the supernatural lies at the heart of Là-bas, a novel in which Huysmans follows Durtal’s spiritual transformation as he researches medieval and modern Satanism. Là-bas was a scandalous best-seller. It inspired a great deal of public debate, especially since it was published in the same review and at the same time as Jules Huret’s first Enquête sur l’évolution littéraire, a series of sixty-four interviews conducted with major French authors from March 3 to July 5, 1891.7 This series, which asked its interviewees whether Naturalism was dead, was a phenomenal success read by all of Paris.8 Huret caused every non-Naturalist writer to agree that Zola’s brand of Naturalism was obsolete because it neglected humanity’s soul.
ellauri145.html on line 715: Toinen pieni harmin aihe on se, että johdannossa ja selityksissä ei tuoda esille des Esseintesin historiallista esikuvaa, kreivi Robert de Montesquiou-Fenzensacia (1855-1921), joka on toiminut esikuvana myös Marcel Proustin Kadonnutta aikaa etsimässä -teossarjan paroni du Charlusille. Eli n:nnen kerran: des Esseintes on se sama homo dändi Montesquiou, joka Charlusina Proustin kirjassa bylsi liiveissä jotain palvelijaa porttikongissa pyllyvakoon, Proustin tirkistellessä hikisenä muna kädessä.
ellauri145.html on line 727: During his schooling at the Imperial Lycée of Saint-Brieuc where he studied from 1858 until 1860, he fell prey to a deep depression, and, over several freezing winters, contracted the severe rheumatism which was to disfigure him severely. He blamed his parents for having placed him there, far from his family´s care and affection. Difficulties in adapting to the harsh discipline of the college´s noble débris (distinguished relics, i.e., teachers) gradually developed those characteristics of anarchic disdain and sarcasm which were to give much of his verse its distinctive voice.
ellauri145.html on line 780: Île de Batz. – Octobre.
ellauri145.html on line 1038: La plus noble race du monde, Jaloin rotu koko maailmassa,
ellauri145.html on line 1059: This paper offers a detailed reading of Rimbaud´ s "obscure" prose pom "Dévotion" from the Illuminations. The reading is based on the central principle that the text is modelled on the form of devotional prayer, a model that Rimbaud adopts only to parody it and transgress against it. Kaikki lukijat on yhtä mieltä että tää on Rimbaudin sepustuxista sekopäisin. Vaik kyllä se aina varoo olemasta selväsanainen, se on epädekadenttia. R. is extremely fond of mystifying his readers.
ellauri145.html on line 1126: Alphonse Allais, né le 20 octobre 1854 à Honfleur et mort le 28 octobre 1905 à Paris, est un journaliste, écrivain et humoriste français. Célèbre à la Belle Époque, reconnu pour sa plume acerbe et son humour absurde, il est notamment renommé pour ses calembours et ses vers holorimes. Il est parfois mais pas souvent considéré comme l´un des plus grands conteurs de langue française.
ellauri145.html on line 1141: Ca semble cependant fortement contredite par une lettre d’Alphonse Allais à sa mère du 23 octobre 1905, dans laquelle il lui apprend qu’à la suite d’une phlébite il vient effectivement de passer 40 jours sur le dos, sans même pouvoir travailler.
ellauri145.html on line 1155: Jean-Pierre Brisset Jean-Pierre Brisset (October 30 1837 – September 2 1919) was a French outsider writer.
ellauri145.html on line 1166: In 1912, novelist Jules Romains, who had obtained copies of God´s Mystery and The Human Origins, set up, with the help of fellow hoaxers, a rigged election for a "Prince of Thinkers". Unsurprisingly, Brisset got elected. The Election Committee then called Brisset to Paris in 1913, where he was received and acclaimed with great pomp. He partook in several ceremonies and a banquet and uttered emotional words of thanks for this unexpected late recognition of his work. Newspapers exposed the hoax the next day.
ellauri146.html on line 50: Auch die Versuche, in Detmold eine Stellung als Jurist zu finden, waren zunächst erfolglos, erst 1826 übernahm er die unbezahlte Vertretung eines erkrankten Auditeurs, dessen besoldeter Nachfolger er 1828 wurde. 1829 erfolgte in Detmold mit Don seinen Freunden Heinrich Heine, Ludwig Tieck, Don Juan und Faust die einzige Aufführung eines seiner Dramen zu Lebzeiten. Ab 1831 verschlechterte sich der Gesundheitszustand Grabbes zusehends, die Folgen seines Alkoholismus wurden sichtbar (eine für Grabbes Alkoholkonsum charakteristische Episode aus dem Herbst 1828 wird von Georg Fein geschildert). Eine Verlobung mit Henriette Meyer wurde von dieser gelöst, als sich Grabbe wieder Louise Christiane Clostermeier zuwandte, die ihn bereits einmal abgewiesen hatte. Grabbe oli aika lailla persujen ex-puheenjohtajan näköinen.
ellauri146.html on line 59: SCHULMEISTER (sitzt am Tische und schenkt aus einer großen Flasche sich ein Glas nach dem andren ein). Utile cum dulci, Schnaps mit Zucker! – Es wird heute ein saurer Tag, – ich muß den Bauerjungen die erste Deklination beibringen. Ein Bauerjunge und die erste Deklination! Das kommt mir vor als wenn ein Rabe ein rein Hemd anziehen wollte! (Er blickt durch das Fenster.) Alle Wetter, da kommt der schiefbeinige Tobies mit seinem einfältigen Schlingel! Schwerenot, wo verstecke ich meinen Schnaps? – geschwind, geschwind, ich will ihn in meinen Bauch verbergen! (Er säuft die Bouteille mit einer entsetzlichen Schnelligkeit aus.) Ah, das war ein Schluck, dessen sich selbst Pestalozzi nicht hätte zu schämen brauchen! Die leere Flasche zum Fenster hinaus!
ellauri146.html on line 69: Ottavio Piccolomini, 1st Duke of Amalfi (11 November 1599 – 11 August 1656) was an Italian nobleman whose military career included service as a Spanish general and then as a field marshal of the Holy Roman Empire. Pisti hönöön ruozalaisille 30-vuotisessa sodassa.
ellauri146.html on line 82: Ja, was in aller Welt sitzt nun so, daß es aussieht wie ich, wenn ich Federn kaue? Wo bekomme ich hier ein schickliches Bild her? Ich will ans Fenster springen und sehen, ob ich draußen nichts Ähnliches erblicke! (Er macht das Fenster auf und sieht ins Freie.) Dort sitzt ein Junge und kackt – Ne, so sieht es nicht aus! – Aber drüben auf der Steinbank sitzt ein zahnloser Bettler und beißt auf ein Stück hartes Brot – Nein, das wäre zu trivial, zu gewöhnlich! (Er macht das Fenster wieder zu und geht in der Stube umher.) Hm, hm! fällt mir denn nichts ein? Ich will doch einmal alles aufzählen, was kauet. Eine Katze kauet, ein Iltis kauet, ein Löwe – Halt! ein Löwe! – Was kauet ein Löwe? Er kauet entweder ein Schaf, oder einen Ochsen, oder eine Ziege, oder ein Pferd – Halt! ein Pferd! – Was dem Pferde die Mähne ist, das ist einer Feder die Fahne, also sehen sich beide ziemlich ähnlich – (jauchzend.) Triumph, da ist ja das Bild! Kühn, neu, calderonisch!
ellauri146.html on line 88: (Er liest diese zwei Zeilen noch einmal laut über und schnalzt mit der Zunge, als ob sie ihm gut schmeckten.) Nein, nein! So eine Metapher gibt es noch gar nicht! Ich erschrecke vor meiner eignen poetischen Kraft! (Behaglich eine Tasse Kaffee schlürfend.) Das Pferd eine Löwenfeder! Und nun das Beiwort »schnell«! Wie treffend! Welche Feder möchte auch wohl schneller sein als das Pferd? – Auch die Worte »eh der Morgen grauet!« wie echt homerisch! Sie passen zwar durchaus nicht hieher, aber sie machen das Bild selbstständig, machen es zu einem Epos im kleinen! – O, ich muß noch einmal vor den Spiegel laufen! (Sich darin betrachtend.) Bei Gott, ein höchst geniales Gesicht! Zwar ist die Nase etwas kolossal, doch das gehört dazu! Ex ungue leonem, an der Nase das Genie!
ellauri146.html on line 114: Der Teufel selbst aber giebt drollige Auskunft über die Beschäftigung der großen Dichter in der Hölle. Shakespeare schreibt Erläuterungen zu Franz Horn, Dante hat den Ernst Schulze zum Fenster hinausgeschmissen, Schiller seufzt über den Freiherrn von Auffenberg. Der Schulmeister loci studiert die neue Litteratur an den Druckproben, in welche der Krämer des Ortes seine Heringe einwickelt. Da erhalte ich Gedichte von August Kuhn, Erzählungen von Krug von Nidda, Maultrommel- oder Lyratöne von Theodor Hell, Trauerspiele von einem gewissen Herrn von Houwald, lauter Damenschriftsteller, und gegen den Schluß hin ergänzt er die mit den faulen Heringen einlaufende Litteraturlieferung mit den Erzählungen von van der Velde und den sämtlichen Werken der ertrunkenen Luise Brachmann.
ellauri146.html on line 118: Wie er sich selbst zu dieser seichten Belletristik stellt, darüber läßt er uns nicht im Unklaren. Herr Mollfels, eine der Hauptpersonen des Stückes giebt einem Schriftsteller Rattengift gute Lehren. »Sie müssen beileibe alles hinlänglich weich kneten, denn das Weiche gefällt und wenn es auch nur nasser Dreck wäre. Vorzüglich aber müssen Sie stets den Geschmack der Damen im Auge behalten, denn diese, welche noch niemals von einem wahren Dichter als berufene Richterinnen anerkannt sind, gelten jetzt im Reiche der Kunst als oberste Appellationsinstanz; ob man sie wegen ihrer kränklichen Nerven oder wegen ihrer Geschicklichkeit im Charpiezupfen dazu erwählt hat, ist eine unentschiedene Frage. Desto entschiedener ist es, Herr Rattengift, daß man Sie, wenn Sie Gewalt genug besitzen, eine dieser Regeln zu verachten, als einen blindlaufenden, verrückten, rohen Phantasten verschreit, der Schönheiten und Erbärmlichkeiten mild nebeneinanderkleckst. Ständen Homer oder Shakespeare erst jetzt mit ihren Werken auf, so wären Beurteilungen zu erwarten, in denen die Iliade ein unsinniges Gemengsel und der Lear [ganz berechtigt, vgl. Album 198] ein bombastischer Saustall genannt würde; ja manche Recensenten geben vielleicht dem Homer einen wohlgemeinten Fingerzeig, sich nach »der bezauberten Rose« emporzubilden, oder gebieten dem Shakespeare, fleißig in den Romanen der Helmine von Chezy und der Fanny Tarnow zu studieren, um daraus Menschenkenntnis zu lernen.«
ellauri146.html on line 120: Grabbe stellt sich natürlich an die Seite eines solchen neuerstandenen Homer und Shakespeare und an einer andern Stelle, wo er ein keimendes Genie verkündet, liest man wenigstens den stillen Herzenswunsch heraus, er selbst möchte dies Genie sein: »Judenjungen,« sagt der Baron, »deren Bildung im Schweinefleischessen besteht, spreizen sich auf den kritischen Richterstühlen und erheben nicht nur Armseligkeitskrämer zu den Sternen, sondern injurieren sogar ehrenwerte Männer in ihren Lobsprüchen; Reimschmiede, die so dumm sind, daß jedesmal, wenn ein Blatt von ihnen ins Publikum kommt, die Esel im Preise aufschlagen, heißen ausgezeichnete Dichter. Schauspieler, die so langweilig sind, daß natürlich alles vor Freude klatscht, wenn sie endlich einmal abgehen, heißen denkende Künstler; Vetteln, deren Stimme so scharf ist, daß man ein Stück Brot damit abschneiden könnte, tituliert man echt dramatisch Sängerinnen. – O stände doch endlich ein gewaltiger Genius auf, der, mit göttlicher Stärke von Haupt zu Fuß gepanzert, sich des deutschen Parnasses annähme und das Gesindel in die Sümpfe zurücktreibe, aus welchen es hervorgekrochen ist.«
ellauri146.html on line 124: Rudolf von Gottschall (1823–1909) oli saksalainen kirjailija, aikansa Saksan monipuolisimpia. Gottschall oli lyyrikko (Neue Gedichte), eepikko (Carlo Zeno, Maja), hän kirjoitti romaaneja (Im Banne des schwarzen Adlers) ja erityisesti näytelmiä: hänen merkittäviä murhenäytelmiään ovat Mazeppa, Der Nabob, Katharina Howard, König Karl XII, Herzog Bernhard von Weimar ja Amy Robsart. Hän kirjoitti myös komedioita, kuten Fix und Fox, Die Diplomaten, Der Spion von Rheinsberg. Mit einer Doktorarbeit über die römischen Strafen bei Ehebruch wurde er 1846 in Königsberg promoviert. De adulterii poenis iure romano constitutis. Gottschalls fortschrittliches Schaffen war zu seinen Lebzeiten geachtet, seine Dramen wurden gern gespielt. Seine Werke zeichneten sich vor allem durch unabhängige Urteilskraft, aber auch durch zeitbezogene Kritik aus, was mit dazu beigetragen hat, dass er nach seinem Tode schnell in Vergessenheit geriet. Lisäksi hän oli kirjallisuushistorioitsija ja esteetikko. Kirjallisuudentutkijana hän julkaisi teoksen Poetik. Vittuako se selitti tossa suorasanaisesti mitä Grabbe kertoo ize paljon hauskemmin? Taitaa olla kuivuri. Saima Harmaja on suomentanut Gottschallin runon "Ken nokkivi ikkunaa? Lupsa!", jonka on säveltänyt Kari Haapala.
ellauri146.html on line 166: MOLLFELS. Soll ich ihnen was vorschlagen? Dichten Sie künftig nichts als Trauerspiele! Wenn Sie denselben nur die gehörige Mittelmäßigkeit verleihen, so ist es unmöglich, daß Sie nicht den rauschendsten Applaus einernteten! Sie müssen insbesondere den Plan der Stücke hübsch winzig und flach gestalten, sonst möchte ihn nicht jeder kurzsichtige Schafskopf überblicken können, – Sie müssen dem Verstande und dem Forschungsgeiste der Leser nicht das geringste zumuten und wenn durch ein Unglück eine hervorstechende Szene mit unterlaufen sollte, sorgfältig hinterdrein bemerken, was sie abzwecke und in welcher Beziehung auf das Ganze sie zu nehmen sei, – Sie müssen beileibe alles hinlänglich weich kneten, denn das Weiche gefällt, und wenn es auch nur nasser Dreck wäre, – vorzüglich aber müssen Sie stets den Geschmack der Damen im Auge behalten, denn diese, welche noch niemals von einem wahren Dichter als berufene Richterinnen anerkannt sind, gelten jetzt im Reiche der Kunst als oberste Appellationsinstanz; ob man sie entweder wegen ihrer kränklichen Nerven oder wegen ihrer Geschicklichkeit im Scharpiezupfen dazu erwählt hat, ist eine unentschiedene Frage. Desto entschiedener ist es, Herr Rattengift, daß man Sie, wenn Sie Gewalt genug besitzen, um diese Regeln zu verachten, als einen blindlaufenden, verrückten, rohen Phantasten verschreit, der Schönheiten und Erbärmlichkeiten wild nebeneinanderkleckst. Ständen Homer oder Shakspeare erst jetzt mit ihren Werken auf, so wären Beurteilungen zu erwarten, in denen die Iliade ein unsinniges Gemengsel und der Lear ein bombastischer Saustall genannt würde; ja, manche Rezensenten gäben vielleicht dem Homer einen wohlgemeinten Fingerzeig, sich nach der Bezauberten Rose emporzubilden, oder geböten dem Shakspeare, fleißig in den Romanen der Helmina von Chezy oder der Fanny Tarnow zu studieren, um daraus Menschenkenntnis zu lernen.
ellauri146.html on line 220: ...Da lernte Grabbe Ludwig Robert kennen, den Bruder der schönen, von Heine gefeierten Schwester, einen der geistvollsten Epigonen der Romantik; aber auch Heinrich Heine selbst, der seine Tragödien Almansor und Ratcliff gerade damals erscheinen ließ und von dem einer der ironischen Freunde berichtet, mit welchem Selbstgefallen seine ungefällige Gestalt damals unter den Linden vor Dümmlers Buchladen »vorbei peripatetisierte,« mit Armensünderwänglein, über welche plötzliche Glut sich ergoß, sobald er sein Werk zum Fenster herausgucken sah. Heines Eigentümlichkeit als Mensch und Dichter hatte für Grabbe viel Sympathisches; er berührte eine verwandte Ader in ihm und blieb gewiß auf die Ausbildung eines, dem idealen Schwung nachspottenden Cynismus, der überall bei Grabbe hervortritt, nicht ohne Einfluß. Damals konnte Heine nicht ahnen, als er den Meister eines phantastischen Humors, den Serapionsbruder Amadeus Hoffmann, zu Grabe tragen sah, daß dasselbe schmerzliche Leiden, welches diese gnomenartige Persönlichkeit hinweggerafft hatte, auch ihn einst an ein langjähriges Krankenlager fesseln werde.
ellauri146.html on line 280: Den första skissen på prosa till Messias påbörjade Klopstock då han studerade teologi i Jena. Redan året därpå, då han flyttat till Leipzig, Tysklands dåvarande litterära centrum, valde han dock, i medveten opposition mot den franska smaken, hexametern som den värdigaste formen för sin dikt. De tre första sångerna utkom 1748 i tidskriften Bremer Beiträge och väckte genast uppseende.[värdeomdöme] Den berömde kritikern Johann Jakob Bodmer inbjöd honom till Zürich.
ellauri146.html on line 286: Han flyttade från Kobenhavn till Hamburg när kronerna tog slot. Han älskade som Kristus engliska burgare. Han var anhängare av den franska revolutionen och utnämndes 1792 till hedersmedborgare i den franska republiken. Men ingen älskare av empire, sku ja tro.
ellauri146.html on line 298: Der Autor setzt beim Auftritt bzw. der Erwähnung vieler Personen und bei Bezügen auf ihre Lebensgeschichten die Kenntnis des Alten und Neuen Testaments voraus. Bei den von ihm erdichteten surrealen Szenen beruft er sich auf Mitteilungen seiner Muse Sionitin, der Seherin Gottes. Oft wird das Geschehen aus beiden Quellen gespiegelt, indirekt beschrieben, so erlebt der Leser die Jungen Jesu anfangs mit den Augen ihrer Schutzengel, die mit dem Engelboten über sie sprechen, oder in der Beobachtung einer anderen Person, z. B. Petrus Verleugnung aus der Perspektive Portias (6. Gesang). Eingearbeitet in solche Gespräche sind Informationen beispielsweise über Jesus Lebensgeschichte und über die Charaktere der Retterjugend (3. Gesang), aber auch frei erfundene Marzipanfiguren. Wie in einem großen Mysterienspiel betreten immer wieder die Seelen alttestamentlicher LakrizFiguren, z. B. der Urväter und Urmütter, der Propheten, der Könige, aber auch der zum Zeitpunkt der Kreuzigung noch ungeborenen zukünftigen Christen die Szenerie.
ellauri146.html on line 333: Zwanzigster Gesang: Lobgesänge der mit Jesus in den Himmel ziehenden Schafen.
ellauri146.html on line 338: On Klopsun keximiä hahmoja. Sammaa ei löydy minun raamatustani. Joel ja Benoni nimet on kyllä hyvästä kirjasta. Rachel died in childbirth. As she was dying she named her son Ben-Oni [son of my grief], but his father Jakob called him Ben-Yamin [son of the right hand, viz. son of the southhand]. Genesis 35:18. Just call me Ben.
ellauri146.html on line 442: Dont la force divine obéit à l’esclave. Jotka tottelee sokeasti orjan käskyjä.
ellauri146.html on line 447: Et jettent, par éclats, leurs mobiles lueurs. Ja heittää salamoina eläväistä valoa.
ellauri146.html on line 636: The Lionizing piece is obviously a quiz on N. P. Willis, and is also a parody on a story by Bulwer. Willis went abroad in 1831, and sent home to the New-York Mirror a series of newsletters, known when collected in book form as Pencillings by the Way. He got into a duel, happily bloodless, with the novelist Captain Marryat. More important to him was the friendship of Lady Blessington. That once world-renowned widow wrote books and edited annuals, to one of which even Tennyson contributed. Now she is remembered chiefly for her salons in London. Believing that some ladies, disapproving of her supposed liaison with Count D’Orsay, would not come to her parties, she invited gentlemen only. Through her Willis met most of the English literati.
ellauri146.html on line 650: Poe’s ancestry on his father’s side was Scotch-Irish and has been traced through County Cavon to Ayrshire, Scotland. The fact that Poe’s Presbyterian Scottish ancestors dwelled for a time in the north of Ireland has caused even so good a scholar as Arthur Hobson Quinn to engage in surprising speculation about an “Irish strain” in Poe and about a “Celtic” trait of perverseness which he had “discovered” in the Poe family.
ellauri146.html on line 654: Poe, unlike other great American writers of his time, spent a considerable portion of his childhood in Britain. In 1815, John Allan set out for England, accompanied by his wife, Frances Allan; his sister-in-law, “Aunt Nancy” Valentine; and his six-year-old foster son, Edgar Poe. For a time Edgar attended the small London school of Miss Dubourg (a name which subsequently was to appear in “The Murders in the Rue Morgue”) and later, for a period of three years from 1817 to 1820, was sent to a better school, the Manor House at Stoke Newington near London. Here Poe, in addition to being affected profoundly by the atmosphere of England, studied French, Latin, history and literature. The Manor House School, with its “Dr.” Bransby, Poe later was to transplant bodily to the semi-autobiographical tale “William Wilson” (1840).
ellauri146.html on line 660: The Richmond which Poe knew was (more than Philadelphia or New York) aristocratic and English. Virginia society, Poe himself noted, had been as “absolutely aristocratical as any in Europe.” This is not to imply the existence of any chasmal gulf separating the American and British minds, respectively, in the first half of the nineteenth century; but it was in Virginia, probably, that the least divergence was to be discerned.
ellauri146.html on line 662: “I am a Virginian,” declared Poe; and “the distinguishing features of Virginian character at present-features of a marked nature—not elsewhere to be met with in America-and evidently akin to that chivalry which denoted the Cavalier—can be in no manner so well accounted for as by considering them the debris of a devoted loyalty.” Poe’s Virginia background may or may not have rendered him typically American, but it seems reasonable to think that it fostered in him a Virginian Anglo-American attitude as opposed to an Anglophobic Americanism so common at that time in New England.
ellauri146.html on line 666: It may be that Poe was embittered by his forced withdrawal from the University. During his life he never returned there, and, though there are oblique references to Charlottesville in “A Tale of the Ragged Mountains” and in The Journal of Julius Rodman, no other allusions to the University are to be found in his written work.
ellauri146.html on line 678: As a critic, Poe often expressed national sentiments. He urged Americans to build their own literature, to avoid a blind adulation of, or slavish imitation of, Europeans simply because they were Europeans. But at the same time, Poe warned against literary chauvanism, which tended to overpraise every dull American writer simply because he happened to be American. Poe’s detached and objective attitude could become, and often did become, highly critical of American society and America
ellauri146.html on line 686: started with the queerest idea conceivable, viz; that all men are born free and equal-this in the very teeth of the laws of gradation so visibly impressed upon all things both in the moral and physical universe. Every man “voted,” as they called it-that is to say, meddled with public affairs-until, at length, it was discovered that what is everybody’s business is nobody’s, and that the “Republic” (as the absurd thing was called) was without a government at all. It is related, however, that the first circumstance which disturbed, very particularly, the self-complacency of the philosophers who constructed this “Republic,” was the startling discovery that universal suffrage gave opportunity for fraudulent schemes….A little reflection upon this discovery sufficed to render evident the consequences, which were that rascality must predominate— in a word, that a republican government could never be anything but a rascally one. While the philosophers, however, were busied in blushing at their stupidity in not having foreseen these inevitable evils, and intent upon the invention of new theories, the matter was put to an abrupt issue by a fellow of the name of Mob, who took everything into his own hands and set up a despotism…. As for republicanism, no analogy could be found for it upon the face of the earth—unless we except the case of the “prairie dogs,” an exception which seems to demonstrate, if anything, that democracy is a very admirable form of government—for dogs.
ellauri146.html on line 713: Poem In October Lokakuun runo
ellauri146.html on line 739: Blackbirds and the sun of October vislaavia mustarastaita ja lokakuun aurinko
ellauri146.html on line 787: Though the town below lay leaved with October blood. Vaikka kylä alhaalla oli lokakuun veren lehvittämä.
ellauri146.html on line 797: As a starting point to my discussion of Thomas's "Poem in October" and Wardi's thoughtful presentation of it. Eynel is a girl, or womenfolk at least. Entä Schachar Bram? Schachar hails from Haifa University. Shachar tarkoittaa aamupuhdetta. Gender of first name Shachar : Boy 83.33%. Onx tää vallan Sakari hepreaxi? Tai paremminkin pikkuprofeetta Sakarja, sillä Johannes Kastajan isäpappa Sakari oli merkkimies vaan kristityille ja muslimeille, ei juutalaisille, ja se kirjoitetaan raamatussa Zacharias. Sakarista tuli mykkä kunnes Johannes oli syntynyt, koska Sakari ei ottanut uskoaxeen että pystyisi vielä impregnoimaan vaimonsa Elisabetin. Tää taisi tulla esille jossain monista lukemistami deutero-evankeliumeista joissa tehdään halpaa pilaa Jeesuxen nuoruusajoista.
ellauri146.html on line 858: Gauck wirbt für einen verantwortungsvollen Kapitalismus (Rede vom 15. November 2012). Man dürfe nicht der Wirtschaft nur aus Angst die Freiheit nehmen. Bei Gauck überraschte allerdings der Kostenumfang. So erhielt Gauck neun Büros im ersten Stock des Bundestagsgebäudes mit insgesamt 197 Quadratmetern. Gaucks Bürobereich wurde für 52.000 Euro umgebaut. Die Möblierung von Gaucks persönlichem Büroraum kostete 35.000 Euro. In der Frankfurter Rundschau kritisierte Katja Thorwart, dass Gauck als ein Beispiel für seine Formulierung „schwer konservativ“ den ehemaligen Vorsitzenden der CDU/CSU-Bundestagsfraktion Alfred Dregger genannt habe, der den nationalsozialistischen Angriffskrieg gegen die Sowjetunion als nicht grundsätzlich falsch eingeordnet, sich für die Freilassung inhaftierter deutscher Kriegsverbrecher eingesetzt oder den Begriff der „Befreiung“ durch die Alliierten im Zweiten Weltkrieg als „einseitig“ markiert habe.
ellauri146.html on line 868: In March 2014 Lenin Square in Dnipropetrovsk was renamed "Heroes of Maidan Square" in honor of the people killed during Euromaidan and the statue of Lenin was removed. Two years later, in May 2016, the city was renamed Dnipro. In February 2019, it was announced that the oblast of Dnipropetrovsk would be renamed to "Sicheslav" in the future.
ellauri147.html on line 81: Olikohan läski obert">Bob Ingria kanssa sieltä kotoisin? Bob kirjoitti Linguistic Inquiryyn artikkelin Compensatory Lengthening as a Metrical Phenomenon v. 1980 kokouxeen The Empty Node Convention. Läppäläppä, ei sellaista kokousta koskaan ollutkaan. Kuhan huijasin. Penixet on pidenneet 1/4 viimeisen sukupolven aikana. Samassa ajassa on spermanlaatu katastrofaalisesti huonontunut. Compensatory lengthening?
ellauri147.html on line 98: In the mid-twentieth century Finnish literature had adopted the free verse of modern poetry. Ale Tyynni however went back to a lyrical style, the ballad. Tyynni’s poems were typical of ballads, offering fateful tales dealing with falling in love and sorrow, and life’s turning points. Balladeja ja romansseja (’Ballads and romances’) appeared in 1967. And Tarinain lähde (‘The source of the tales’, 1974) depicted the death of a loved one, sorrow and solitude. Nobody cared to read such balderdash any more.
ellauri147.html on line 177: Emily in Paris is an American-French comedy-drama streaming television series created by Barren Star, which premiered on Netflix on October 2, 2020. The series stars Lily "Mr." Collins as the eponymous Emily, an American who moves to Paris to provide an American point of view to Savior, a French marketing firm. There, she struggles to succeed in the workplace while searching for sex and experiencing a culture clash with her "boring" and small-minded Midwestern U.S. upbringing. It also stars Ashley Park, Philippine Leroy-Beaulieu, Lucas Bravo, the cast's one and only spooky sooty tarbaby coon Samuel Arnold, Camille Razat, and Bruno Gouery. Lystikästä että "boring" pitää laittaa scare quoteihin. 91% piti tästä ohjelmasta. 91% ei kazonut.
ellauri147.html on line 179: Emily in Paris follows Emily, a battery driven 20-something American from Chicago who moves to Paris for an unexpected job opportunity. She is tasked with bringing an American point of view to a venerable French marketing firm. Cultures clash as she adjusts to the challenges of life in Paris while juggling her career, new friendships and genitals.
ellauri147.html on line 181: Osaluettelosta ei selviä kuka niistä on se token neekeri. Vähän väliä. Se on pelkkä comic relief taas kuitenkin. Tuskin jaxan odottaa sitä jaxoa jossa esiintyy lupaava Julien Floreancig as Thomas, a French snob philosophy professor.
ellauri147.html on line 196: Mutta onko semiootikko snobi (niinkuin sanoo pikkucheefi) vaiko dandy? Riippuu käytetäänkö amerikkalaista määritelmää vaiko ranskalaista. Tomppa on aatelinen laskukas, kokki kolmonen on normandialainen maalaistollo nousukas. Selvä pyy,
ellauri147.html on line 197: Gabriel on snobi Carcassuxen väitöskirjan mielessä, ja Tomi dandy. No oman siviilisäätynsä säännöillä molemmat on oikeassa. Snobi on nousukas ja/tai hienostelija. Tomista kokki snobbailee kun ei ota tazkoja eikä kääri ize sätkiään, Gabista Tomi snobbailee kun on olevinaan jotain hienompaa kuin maalaiskokki. Gabi on moukka kiipijä joka luulee olevansa yhtä hyvä, Tomppa on nirppanokka hienostelija joka luulee olevansa parempi. Kumpikin taitaa olla väärässä.
ellauri147.html on line 203: Emily's boss Madeline prepares to make the transition from the Chicago based pharmaceutical marketing firm, the Gilbert Group, to a French based fashion firm, Savior, when she discovers that she is pregnant. She offers the job to Emily and she accepts, leaving her boyfriend back in Chicago. Emily moves to Paris despite the fact that she does not speak French. She moves into the 5th floor of an old apartment building without an elevator but with a wonderful Parisian view. Emily creates an Instagram account, @emilyinparis, and begins documenting her time in Paris. Emily starts her first day of work much to her new co-workers chagrin who reveal that she was only hired because of a business deal. She introduces the French to American social media strategies who seem very reluctant about her and her American methods. Emily accidentally tries to enter the wrong apartment and bangs her very attractive neighbor right at the door, Gabriel. As Emily accustoms to life in Paris she makes countless faux-pas and the firm nicknames her "la plouc" or "the hick". Emily meets Mindy Chen, a nanny originally from Shanghai, and they become fast friends. After Emily and her boyfriend attempt to have cybersex but the connection fails, she plugs in her vibrator and accidentally short-circuits the block's power. "Accidentally" is the top frequency word in the script.
ellauri147.html on line 217: At Café de Flore, Emily meets Thomas, a French philosophy professor. They hit it off and she invites him back to her apartment to have sex. Emily and Thomas encounter Gabriel and Camille, and Camille invites them to join them at a tapas restaurant. Thomas and Gabriel do not get along. The next day, Gabriel tells Emily he thinks Thomas is a snob, and not worthy of her. She is clearly more of the tattooed-arm master chef type. Fair enough.
ellauri147.html on line 219: Emily discovers Pierre has designed the costumes for Swan Lake so she invites Thomas to join her. However, he insults her by telling her Swan Lake is a ballet for tourists. Emily realizes that he is a snob so she leaves him. Emily is really not one for snobs.
ellauri147.html on line 228: Emily finally gets an opportunity to pitch her idea to Camille´s mother. Sylvie is unimpressed with Emily´s idea to market Camille´s family´s champagne. Emily meets Julia Roberts who is a member of the Aussie Football League (AFL). She is aware of Emily´s association with Pierre Cadault and asks if Pierre might be willing to donate her his dress to be auctioned at AFL´s fundraising benefit.
ellauri147.html on line 242: Filming for the second season began on May 3, 2021 and concluded on July 19, 2021. Filming locations for the second season include Paris, Saint-Tropez, and various other locations in France. Filming of the second season in Paris causes problems with the neighborhood - the crew being judged brutal, threatening and too intrusive. In the last episode, the fed-up Frenchies kick the arrogant Americans into the Seine. At last, things are getting a little more exciting at last!
ellauri147.html on line 253: Sonia Rao, of Washington Post compares Emily to the heroines of the Amy Sherman-The show received two nominations at the Golden Globe Awards, but prior to the ceremony it was reported that 30 members of the voting body had been flown to Paris, where they spent two nights at The Peninsula Paris and were treated to a private lunch at the Musée des Arts Forains, with the bill reportedly paid by the show´s developer, Paramount Network. This led some critics to question the impartiality of the voting body, as Emily in Paris is considered to have been a critical flop, and even its nomination was a surprise. In contrast, critically-acclaimed shows, notably I May Destroy You, were not nominated. Midge Maisel, her actions can be quite rash, but she still wins over her fictional acquaintances while utterly baffling viewers."
ellauri147.html on line 268: For the week of October 5, 2020, Emily in Paris reached the top ten list of most watched streaming shows per Nielsen. On May 3, 2021, Netflix revealed that the series has been watched by 58 million of households in the month after its debut. The Series remained in UK top 10 list for 40 consecutive days after its release.
ellauri147.html on line 270: The show received two nominations at the Golden Globe Awards, but prior to the ceremony it was reported that 30 members of the voting body had been flown to Paris, where they spent two nights at The Peninsula Paris and were treated to a private lunch at the Musée des Arts Forains, with the bill reportedly paid by the show´s developer, Paramount Network. This led some critics to question the impartiality of the voting body, as Emily in Paris is considered to have been a critical flop, and its nomination was a surprise. In contrast, critically-acclaimed shows, notably I May Destroy You, were not nominated.
ellauri147.html on line 272: Mistähän se johtuu että tällästen yxilahkeiselle rahvaalle tähdättyjen herutuspätkien miesihanne on aina joku kokki? Onxe kazojista kaikist ihaninta? Kokki tai palomies. Kuukki ja/tai panomies. Tollanen panee kyllä suututtaan tällästä lingvistisnobia, puhumattakaan Tristan Corbierestä.
ellauri147.html on line 357: After his divorce to Orianne, and struggling to play the drums for health reasons, Phil Collins developed a drinking problem, which spiraled out of control. According to him, he required a “medically enforced drying-out process.” Kuivatelakalle niinkuin isä Mefodi. However, his low self-esteem also got in the way of seeing things clearly. No wonder. Paul McCartney´s net worth is 1.2 gigadollars! He could buy Phil 5 times over!
ellauri147.html on line 411: He has won several awards, including the Grammy Awards, Brit Awards, American Music Awards, Academy Award, and Golden Globe Awards.
ellauri147.html on line 454: She co-starred as Marla Mabrey, a devout Baptist beauty queen living in a beautiful home with her strict mother Lucy, in the 2016 American romantic comedy-drama film, Rules Don’t Apply. Her performance in the movie got her nominated for the 2017 Golden Globe Award in the “Best Actress in a Motion Picture – Comedy or Musical” category.
ellauri147.html on line 468: At the PETA’s 2020 Libby Awards, she received the ‘Most Pawsitive Quarantine Story’ award for adopting a puppy named Robert Redford from the animal shelter.
ellauri147.html on line 540: 1/4 juutalainen Emily muistuttaa että sanassa team ei ole iitä. Sylvia kexii nokkelasti että Ranskan sanassapa equipe on. Kun toimitaan tii-minä niin se on minä monikossa eli me. Ei se siitä sen kummemmaxi tule. Parasta olisi olla kivi, ne ei pyri minnekään. Paizi Aristoteleen mielestä ne pyrkii alaspäin. Ne on dandyja eikä snobeja.
ellauri147.html on line 582: Auch nicht die verfallstheoretischen Diagnosen, die daran den Verlust von Scham, die Auflösung des Überich oder gar das Verschwinden des Subjekts meinen ablesen zu können. Dem notorischen Verachtungsdiskurs mag ich mich schon deshalb nicht anschließen, weil er von Autoren geführt wird, die sich selbst gerne im Rampenlicht der Öffentlichkeit sehen und um Aufmerksamkeit ringen, also partizipieren am medialen Spiel um Bedeutung, das sie zugleich so angewidert diagnostizieren. In der öffentlichen Anerkennung, nicht im stillen Kämmerlein, erweist sich geradezu ihre Identität als Intellektuelle – auch sie wollen schließlich gesehen, gehört, beachtet und schließlich anerkannt werden. Dazu müssen sie einen Markt finden, der ihre Produkte abnimmt, und am medialen Wettbewerb teilnehmen, ob sie das wollen oder nicht.-->
ellauri147.html on line 586:
ellauri147.html on line 654:
ellauri147.html on line 669:
ellauri147.html on line 677: (Martin on primäärinarsismille hyvin hyvin vihainen.) Säuglingtutkimuxissa ei näy siitä mitään merkkiä. Ei imeväiset ole ameeboita vaikka imevätkin tissiä, niillä on vahva kazekontakti primääriobjektiin, joka ei ole siis vaan tissi, vaan äidin pärstävärkki. Ameebaläppä on tarmokkaasti torjuttava. Se on infektiöösi. Perinteiset kallonkutistajat puolustautuvat samalla keinolla kuin saarnaajat: ei se ole tässä tärkeää mikä on totta, vaan miltä tuntuu, ja mikä tehoaa. Analyytikkojen turinat tiettävästi toimivat, samantekevää ovatko ne jossain hämärässä mielessä "totta" vai ei. Potilaat tykkää niistä. Lasten ja äitien vuorovaikutuxen tutkiminen on un-psychoanalytisch, se kuuluu jonnekin sosiopsykologian reservaattiin. Näin siis 70-luvulla, jolloin Martin opiskeli Bambergissa. Tällänen kaxoisstandardi, Revue des Deux Mondes (jota luki Tolstoin Lekan sankari teoxessa Ylösnousemus) ei käy ollenkaan päinsä enää, Martin terottaa, eläköön siis Winnicot!
ellauri147.html on line 679: Lapsi kokee ja kohtelee esinettä, vaikka hän pitäisi sitä erillisenä, affektiivisesti ikään kuin hän voisi hävittää sen. Sen itsenäisyyden tunnustaminen lisäisi avuttomuutta katastrofin pelkoon. Winnicott on kuvannut tätä kehityksen käsitteessään absoluuttisesta riippuvuudesta itsenäiseen itseensä erittäin hienosti: optimaalisen kieltäytymisen kautta keskimääräinen hyvä äiti antaa lapselle mahdollisuuden aggressioon, joka on suunnattu epäonnistumista vastaan ulkopuolella ja luo siten kohteesta, koska se selviää aggressiosta, jotain riippumatonta (objektin käyttö).
ellauri147.html on line 680:
ellauri147.html on line 682: Siksi olen ehdottanut (Altmeyer 2000 a,b) ensisijaisen narsismin ja ensisijaisen kohdesuhteen näennäisesti ontologisen kontrastin poistamista ymmärtämällä se epistemologisena erona: Se, mikä tekee vaikutelman ulkopuolisen tarkkailijan näkökulmasta taitavasta vuorovaikutuksesta, voidaan empaattisesti ymmärtää varhaisena itsekokemuksena, joka tietää esineestä jo ajattelematta sitä. Bollas (1997) tunnisti varhaisen kohteen "varjon" tässä "ennakoimattomassa tunnetussa" ja aisti siten primaarisen narsismin objektiivisen saastumisen. Vaikka äidin tissillä niin sanotussa primaarisen narsismin vaiheessa on eksistentiaalinen, elintärkeä merkitys ehdottoman riippuvaiselle lapselle, häntä ei voida subjektiivisesti kokea itsenäisenä esineenä. Kohde on suljettu ensisijaisen narsismin kokemuksen maailmaan.
ellauri147.html on line 684:
ellauri147.html on line 697:
ellauri147.html on line 733:
ellauri147.html on line 778: 4. Die eigene Person und ihre Probleme sind so einzigartig, dass sie nur von besonderen Menschen verstanden werden können.
ellauri147.html on line 810:
ellauri147.html on line 845: Mutta kuinka objektiivisesta subjektiivisesta, ulkosisuskosta, miten aineellisesta sielusta syntyy - nämä ovat ratkaisemattomia kysymyksiä, joita apinatieteet kysyvät itseltään. Over to you, Tolstoin Lexa! Tässä on nyt ylösnousemuxen paikka!
ellauri147.html on line 866: The effect was first described in 1878 by Francis Galton. He had devised a technique called composite photography, which he believed could be used to identify 'types' by appearance, which he hoped would aid medical diagnosis, and even criminology through the identification of typical criminal faces. Galton's hypothesis was that certain groups of people may have common facial characteristics. To test the hypothesis, he created photographic composite images of the faces of vegetarians and criminals to see if there was a typical facial appearance for each. Galton overlaid multiple images of faces onto a single photographic plate so that each individual face contributed roughly equally to a final composite face. The resultant "averaged" faces did little to allow the a priori identification of either criminals or vegetarians, failing Galton's hypothesis. However, unexpectedly Galton observed that the composite image was more attractive than the component faces. Galton published this finding in 1878, and also described his composite photography technique in detail in Inquiries in Human Faculty and its Development. He subsequently sold the invention to an early erotic photography firm.
ellauri147.html on line 868: A University of Toronto student found that the facial proportions of celebrities including Jessica Alba were close to the average of all female profiles. That the preference for the average is biological rather than cultural has been supported by studies on babies, who gaze longer at attractive faces than at unattractive ones. People generally find youthful average faces sexually the most attractive. prototypes are preferred to individual exemplars of the stimuli categories. Thus an average face is probably attractive simply because it is prototypical. An averaged face made of 32 faces looks almost indistinguishable from any other 32-face averaged face even when they are created from a completely different set of individuals. Left-right symmetry is not the issue, presumably because neither are the viewers´ eyes.
ellauri150.html on line 251: Juha-Risto snobbailee
ellauri150.html on line 261: Parmi les jeunes filles du monde, — peu nombreuses d’ailleurs, — que Christophe avait pour élèves, était la fille d’un riche fabricant d’automobiles, Colette Stevens. Son père était Belge, naturalisé Français, fils d’un Anglo-Américain établi à Anvers et d’une Hollandaise. Sa mère était Italienne. C’était une famille bien parisienne. Pour Christophe, — pour bien d’autres, — Colette Stevens était le type de la jeune fille française.
ellauri150.html on line 279: Dans le salon de l’hôtel aristocratique, décoré de tapisseries un peu pâles, avec, sur un chevalet, au milieu de la pièce, le portrait de la robuste madame Stevens par un peintre à la mode, qui l’avait représentée languissante, comme une fleur sans eau, les yeux mourants, le corps tordu en spirale, pour exprimer la rareté de son âme millionnaire, — dans le grand salon aux baies vitrées, donnant sur de vieux arbres, que la neige poudrait, Christophe trouvait Colette toujours assise devant son piano, ressassant indéfiniment les mêmes phrases, se caressant les oreilles de dissonances moelleuses.
ellauri150.html on line 341: Elle note à son tour ce déferlement des snobismes:
ellauri150.html on line 343: Autour de Colette Steve grouillent d'écœurants petits snobs, riches pour la plupart, en tout cas oisifs et qui, tous, prétendent écrire. C'était une névre sous la Troisième République. C'était surtout une forme de paresse vaniteuse le travail intellectuel étant de tous le plus difficile contrôler et celui qui prête le plus au bluff. Ces gens parlent sans cesse de pensée, tout en ne ressemblant attacher d'importance qu'a l'agencement des mots, n'ont d'autre culte que le culte du moi, griment leur esprit, suivent deux ou trois modèles ou miment une idee. La force, la joie, la pitié, la solidarité, le socialisme, l'anarchisme, la foi, la liberté c'étaient des rôles pour eux. Ils avaient le talent de faire des plus chères pensées une affaire de littérature et ramener les plus heroiques elans de l'ame humaine au role d'articles du salon, de cravates a la mode.
ellauri150.html on line 375: Kukas näistä on konnimman näköinen? Takinkääntäjästä tuli kielenkääntäjä. Brittejä se ei haitannut. Kolmas wiixiwallu Daltonin veljes on Juha-Risto. Loput 2 on esiintyviä taiteilijasnobeja. Parrakas mies ei saa naista, mutta parratonpa sai, yhden ainakin. Punaisesta tekonenästä on apua.
ellauri150.html on line 412: Niiden lapset, seuraava polvi oli jo fasisteja ja esinazeja. Modernistit, Robert Musil ja se saku, Broch. Tää oli jo burzhuaa luokan vastaista tehdastyöläiskapinaa.
ellauri150.html on line 459: The Polish writer Henryk Sienkiewicz wrote the novel Quo Vadis: A Narrative of the Time of Nero (1895–96, a tremendous hit in fin de siecle Paris) which in turn has been made into motion pictures several times, including a 1951 version that was nominated for eight Academy Awards. Vittu vaan 8, Ben veti mahtavammat 11, samoinkuin vielä järisyttävämmät suurteoxet Titanic ja Bored of the Rings. For this and other films novels, Sienkiewicz received the 1905 Nobel Prize for Literature.
ellauri150.html on line 469: Despite his victory, Ben-Hur is despondent about his family and his former friend One-Leg Messiah. Later, Esther witnesses the arrest of Jesus in the Garden of Gethsemane. Ben-Hur and Esther witness a bruised and beaten Jesus being forced to carry his cross through the streets. Mirroring his first encounter with Jesus, Ben-Hur tries to offer Jesus water but is beaten to it by a Roman soldier. Following Jesus' crucifixion, a rainstorm occurs, thanx to Esther. Naomi and Tirzah are miraculously healed by rainwater containing the pee of Esther, and Sheik Ilderim pays a king's ransom to set them free. Despite his anger, Ben-Hur finds the strength in his heart to forgive One-Leg Messiah and is reconciled with him and his family. Together, Två-Ben-Hur, his mother, sister, Esther, and One-Leg Messiah accompany Sheik Ilderim's Ford Caravan as they leave Jerusalem on to new adventures. Luckily, One-Leg Messias had avoided the fate of Moby "No Dick" Ahasverus.
ellauri150.html on line 476: The film's final onscreen writing credits created controversy when, in October 1959, the Writers Guild of America (WGA) awarded Tunberg sole screenplay credit, despite the objections of the film's director, William Wyler, who, in the film's commemorative booklet and elsewhere, claimed that Christopher Fry was more responsible than any other writer for the final screenplay. In response to Wyler's public outcries against their ruling, the WGA took out trade paper ads on November 20, 1959 in which they issued a statement reading, in part, "the unanimous decision of the three judges was that the sole screenplay credit was awarded to Karl Tunberg...The record shows the following: 1. Karl Tunberg is the only writer who has ever written a complete screenplay on Ben-Hur; 2. Karl Tunberg continued to contribute materials throughout the actual filming, and this material is incorporated in the final picture; and 3. Karl Tunberg alone did the necessary rewriting during the four months of retakes and added scenes. Mr. Christopher Fry himself was fully informed of the proceedings of the Guild. He has made it absolutely clear that he did not want to protest the decision of the Guild."
ellauri150.html on line 478: Arthur Hammond Harris aka Christopher Fry (18 December 1907 – 30 June 2005) was an English poet and playwright. He is best known for his verse dramas, especially The Lady's Not for Burning, which made him a major force in theatre in the 1940s and 1950s. Fry was born as Arthur Hammond Harris in Bristol, the son of Charles John Harris, a master builder who retired early to work full-time as a licensed Lay Reader in the Church of England, and his wife Emma Marguerite Fry Hammond Harris. While still young, he took his mother's maiden name because, on very tenuous grounds, he believed her to be related to the 19th-century Quaker prison reformer Elizabeth Fry. He adopted Elizabeth Fry's faith, and became a Quaker and a gay. In the 1920s, he met the writer Robert Gittings, who became a lifelong friend. Maybe William Wyler was another yet longer friend. Gore Vidal most certainly another.
ellauri150.html on line 480: Eugene Luther Gore Vidal (/vɪˈdɑːl/; born Eugene Louis Vidal, October 3, 1925 – July 31, 2012) was an American writer and public intellectual known for his epigrammatic wit, erudition, and patrician manner. Vidal was bisexual, and in his novels and essays interrogated the social and cultural sexual norms he perceived as driving American life. Beyond literature, Vidal was heavily involved in politics. He twice sought office—unsuccessfully—as a Democratic Party candidate, first in 1960 to the United States House of Representatives (for New York), and later in 1982 to the U.S. Senate (for California). His third novel, The City and the Pillar (1948), offended the literary, political, and moral sensibilities of conservative book reviewers, the plot being about a dispassionately presented male homosexual relationship.
ellauri150.html on line 482: Over the 57 years that have followed, a few things have contributed to granting the film untouchable status, the foremost being the fact that it won 11 Academy Awards, still the most Oscars any film has ever won. (That total was later matched by Titanic and Lord of the Rings: The Return of the King.) But while the Oscars, the prestige, and the fact that the plot of the film deals directly (if obliquely) with the life and death of Jesus Christ, all contribute to a certain image of Ben-Hur, there have always been alternate views of the film. One of the most famous came from the mouth of one of its own screenwriters.
ellauri150.html on line 484: Based on an 1880 novel, Ben-Hur: A Tale of the Christ, the film was directed by Hollywood great William Wyler, and screenwriter Gore Vidal was one of many who took a pass at the screenplay. In The Celluloid Closet, Vidal states in no uncertain terms that he scripted the film as a confrontation between ex-lovers Ben-Hur (Charlton Heston) and Messala (Stephen Boyd). Further, Vidal claims that, after consultation with Wyler and Boyd (but not Heston, who would have objected), he wrote one particular scene, where the estranged Ben-Hur and Messala meet again, with heavy gay subtext.
ellauri150.html on line 558: Back in Rome, Esther wore the garments of a Jewish matron. Tirzah and two children at play upon a lion’s skin on the floor were her playmates; and it was fun to observe how carefully Ben watched them to make sure that the little ones were his.
ellauri150.html on line 606: When we return, it's Anno Domini XXVI - A.D. 26. Messala, a Roman who grew up in Judea but spent most of his life in more traditional Roman enclaves, is accepting an important position in Jerusalem under the new governor of Judea; it's a hard job, since the Jews don't want the Romans there, but he feels up to it. He is visited by his childhood friend, and our hero, Judah Ben-Hur, a very important and influential Jew. They try to pick up the friendship where it left off, but there's one big problem: they no longer have anything in common besides their shared past. They are in denial about this for a while, and Judah agrees to try to get people to accept the Romans.
ellauri150.html on line 635: The house of Hur is in ruins, but people are living there. He is met by Esther; she and her father were in there for only a year. Her father was paralyzed in prison, so a big fella who shared a cell with him and went mute during that time has also moved in to help. They are still in Jerusalem because all the assets were seized by the Romans - well, not all the assets, but they don't want the Romans to know about the rest of them prematurely. Esther never married, partly because the reason for arranging that marriage no longer applied, and partly because - she looks at her all-black clothing here, so we're probably supposed to believe that her fiance died.
ellauri150.html on line 645: After the intermission, Ben-Hur has taken the charioteer job now. and Ilderim visits the bathhouse where the young Roman nobles luxuriate, half-naked.note Messala is there talking about his unbeatable team of horses. Ilderim says his team is even better, and offers a wager with LOTS of money involved. He eventually succeeds...
ellauri150.html on line 683: These are they in very truth who, as the sacred text bears witness, defile the flesh, and despise dominion, and blaspheme majesty. They leave nothing scathless or uninjured of that which human and divine laws alike have wisely ordained to ensure the preservation and honor of life. From the heads of States to whom, as the Apostle admonishes, all owe submission, and on whom the rights of authority are bestowed by God Himself, these sectaries withhold obedience and preach up the perfect equality of all men in regard to rights alike and duties. The natural union of man and woman, which is held sacred even among barbarous nations, they hold in scorn; and its bond, whereby family life is chiefly maintained, they slacken, or else yield up to the sway of lust.
ellauri150.html on line 701: Now, how do we know right from wrong? Well that's easy - just follow the law. But who's law? God's Law! So we are free to obey the law! In fact, We MUST be free, how else can God punish us, instead of shutting us in a pen, or lunatic asylum?
ellauri150.html on line 736: It seems to me that Hawking is using a particular model of the universe to try to attack religion. But for me the very fact that there is a universe is enough to fill me with awe at creation and in God the Creator. In fact the more we learn about the immensity of space and the variety of celestial objects, the more I am filled with awe and wonder. Part of that is the admiration that we are living in such an advanced society that we are able to make these discoveries in the first place.
ellauri150.html on line 740: Catholics believe that Jesus was at once God and Man. I have begun to think of Jesus as being able to see at once the physical world (with one eye) and the spirit world (with the other). Perhaps Satan tried to pull him out of the physical world back into the spiritual world to destroy his mission, but Jesus rebuked Satan. There's lots of similar scenes with the dark side of the force sucking the good guys in Star Wars, and Mordor's Eye hypnotizing the poor Hobbits, plus one really scary one in Harry Potter, where Voldemort (sorry I mentioned the name) tries to slurp Harry into a pot of soup.
ellauri150.html on line 742: I completely agree with you, even our own existence, the wonders of the human body (the peg and the hole, for instance, that perfectly fit one another) and this earth and the global warming are enough to prove it.
ellauri150.html on line 748: The problem with this is that I wouldn't trust Hollywood to make such a movie. They would use it as an opportunity to spread disinformation and to distort the stories of the saints. We have already seen this in recent years with movies of St. Joan of Arc.
ellauri150.html on line 768: P.S. Tomorrow (Sun 9PM) is the MTV music awards. I'll probably watch it just in order to monitor the latest ideas that are being pushed onto young people.
ellauri150.html on line 771: P.P.P.S. The MTV Music awards are starting now. I'm recording it and will probably watch it tomorrow.
ellauri151.html on line 53: This autobiography/biography was written at the time of the award and first published in the book series Les Prix Nobel. It was later edited and republished in Nobel Lectures. To cite this document, always state the source as shown above.
ellauri151.html on line 76: Heimut täähän on se Helmin jokajouluinen Walt Disneyn Samu Sirkka!? Mulanillakin oli sirkka, ja sellainen oli myös sillä jäterobotilla, annas nyt, WALL-E, vaikka se ei ollutkaan Disneyn. Vai oliko se? No olihan se, vaikka Pixarin piirtämä.
ellauri151.html on line 85: Because the pastor is really the main character in Gide's limited world, she feels herself to be in love with him and to some extent (tent, hehe) he has similar feelings toward her. When his eldest son Jacques, who is about the same age as Gertrude, asks to marry her, the pastor becomes jealous and refuses despite the fact that Jacques is obviously in love with her, and has a bigger tent.
ellauri151.html on line 106: Proust considérait l’homosexualité comme un enfer, une dépravation vouée obligatoirement à l’humiliation morale et physique, au contraire d’un Gide qui dépeint une « pédophilie juvénile et souriante ». Il a toujours eu la hantise que sa mère découvre ses penchants et ce n’est qu’après la mort de ses parents qu’il s’affichera plus ouvertement avec ses amants.
ellauri151.html on line 108: Car d’après ce que j’entendis les premiers temps dans celle de Jupien et qui ne furent que des sons inarticulés, je suppose que peu de paroles furent prononcées. Il est vrai que ces sons étaient si violents que, s’ils n’avaient pas été toujours repris un octave plus haut par une plainte parallèle, j’aurais pu croire qu’une personne en égorgeait une autre à côté de moi et qu’ensuite le meurtrier et sa victime ressuscitée prenaient un bain pour effacer les traces du crime. J’en conclus plus tard qu’il y a une chose aussi bruyante que la souffrance, c’est le plaisir, surtout quand s’y ajoutent—à défaut de la peur d’avoir des enfants, ce qui ne pouvait être le cas ici, malgré l’exemple peu probant de la Légende dorée—des soucis immédiats de propreté. Enfin au bout d’une demi-heure environ (pendant laquelle je m’étais hissé à pas de loup sur mon échelle afin de voir par le vasistas que je n’ouvris pas), une conversation s’engagea. Jupien refusait avec force l’argent que M. de Charlus voulait lui donner. (SG 609/11).
ellauri151.html on line 110: André Paul Guillaume Gide (French: [ɑ̃dʁe pɔl ɡijom ʒid]; 22 November 1869 – 19 February 1951) was a French author and winner of the Nobel Prize in Literature (in 1947). André was born in Paris on 22 November 1869, into a middle-class Protestant family. His father was a Paris University professor of law who died in 1880, Jean Paul Guillaume Gide, and his mother was Juliette Maria Rondeaux. His uncle was the political economist Charles Gide. His paternal family traced its roots back to Italy, with his ancestors, the Guidos, moving to France and other western and northern European countries after converting to Protestantism during the 16th century, due to persecution.
ellauri151.html on line 122: In 1924, he published an autobiography, If it Die... (French: Si le grain ne meurt). In the same year, he produced the first French language editions of Joseph Conrad´s Heart of Darkness and Lord Jim.
ellauri151.html on line 130: Gide was, by general consent, one of the dozen most important writers of the 20th century. Moreover, no writer of such stature had led such an interesting life, a life accessibly interesting to us as readers of his autobiographical writings, his journal, his voluminous correspondence and the testimony of others. It was the life of a man engaging not only in the business of artistic creation, but reflecting on that process in his journal, reading that work to his friends and discussing it with them; a man who knew and corresponded with all the major literary figures of his own country and with many in Germany and England; who found daily nourishment in the Latin, French, English and German classics, and, for much of his life, in the Bible; [who enjoyed playing Chopin and other classic works on the piano;] and who engaged in commenting on the moral, political and sexual questions of the day. Monsters lead an interesting li-i-fe.
ellauri151.html on line 132: Mä luulen ezen claim to Nobel fame vuonna 1947 oli toi antikommunismi ennen kaikkea. In 1946, when Pierre Herbert asked Gide which of his books he would choose if only one were to survive," Gide replied, ´I think it would be my Journal.´" Beginning at the age of eighteen or nineteen, Gide kept a journal all of his life and when these were first made available to the public, they ran to thirteen hundred pages. Pääasiassa homoilua ja sen puolustelua. Gide ei koskaan bylsinyt vaimoaan Madeleinea, mutta kävi kerran jonkun nuoren neidon pukilla, ja siitti siinä yhden tyttären. Toista varvia ei tullut, vaikka neito pyyteli.
ellauri151.html on line 171: Étienne Bonnot de Condillac (30. syyskuuta 1714 Grenoble, Ranska – 3. elokuuta 1780 Lailly-en-Val, Ranska) oli ranskalainen filosofi ja tietoteoreetikko, joka töissään tutki mielenfilosofiaa ja psykologiaa.
ellauri151.html on line 198: For several years, Bridgman gained celebrity status when Charles Dickens met her during his 1842 American tour and wrote about her accomplishments in his American Notes. Her fame was short-lived, however, and she spent the remainder of her life in relative obscurity, most of it at the Perkins Institute, where she passed her time sewing and reading books in Braille. LOL
ellauri151.html on line 235: „It is better to be hated for what you are than to be loved for what you are not.“ — André Gide. Frequently misattributed to Marilyn Monroe or Kurt Cobain.
ellauri151.html on line 253: The most important things to say are those which often I think necessary for me to say — though they are obvious.“
ellauri151.html on line 299: Obgleich aber das unglückliche Bewußtsein also diese Gegenwart nicht besitzt, so ist es zugleich über das reine Denken, insofern dieses das abstrakte von der Einzelnheit überhaupt wegsehende Denken des Stoizismus, und das nur unruhige Denken des Skeptizismus – in der Tat nur die Einzelnheit als der bewußtlose Widerspruch und dessen rastlose Bewegung – ist; es ist über diese beide hinaus, es bringt und hält das reine Denken und die Einzelnheit zusammen, ist aber noch nicht zu demjenigen Denken erhoben, für welches die Einzelnheit des Bewußtseins mit dem reinen Denken selbst ausgesöhnt ist. Es steht vielmehr in dieser Mitte, worin das abstrakte Denken die Einzelnheit des Bewußtseins als Einzelnheit berührt. Es selbst ist diese Berührung; es ist die Einheit des reinen Denkens und der Einzelnheit; es ist auch für es diese denkende Einzelnheit, oder das reine Denken, und das Unwandelbare wesentlich selbst als Einzelnheit. Aber es ist nicht für es, daß dieser sein Gegenstand, das Unwandelbare, welches ihm wesentlich die Gestalt der Einzelnheit hat, es selbst ist, es selbst, das Einzelnheit des Bewußtseins ist.
ellauri151.html on line 389: Hamann vaikutti Herderiin, Goetheen, Jacobiin, Hegeliin ja Kierkegaardiin. Hämärämpää hämärämmän läpitte. Hamannista on käytetty nimitystä "der Magus des Nordens" ('Pohjan tietäjä'). Hän opiskeli Königsbergissä filosofiaa, teologiaa, kielitiedettä ja lakitiedettä. Hän asui pitkään eri paikoissa Saksassa, Itämerenmaakunnissa, Englannissa ja muualla ja vietti kiertelevää elämää, osaksi kotiopettajana, osaksi muissa tehtävissä. Hän oli ajoittain virkamiehenä kotikaupungissaan, etenkin tullilaitoksessa.
ellauri151.html on line 409: Lies, fables and romances must needs be probable, but not the truth and foundation of our faith.
ellauri151.html on line 452: Let us assume that we invited an unknown person to a game of cards. If this person answered us, “I don’t play,” we would either interpret this to mean that he did not understand the game, or that he had an aversion to it which arose from economic, ethical, or other reasons. Let us imagine, however, that an honorable man, who was known to possess every possible skill in the game, and who was well versed in its rules and its forbidden tricks, but who could like a game and participate in it only when it was an innocent pastime, were invited into a company of clever swindlers, who were known as good players and to whom he was equal on both scores, to join them in a game. If he said, “I do not play,” we would have to join him in looking the people with whom he was talking straight in the face, and would be able to supplement his words as follows: “I don’t play, that is, with people such as you, who break the rules of the game, and rob it of its pleasure. If you offer to play a game, our mutual agreement, then, is that we recognize the capriciousness of chance as our master; and you call the science of your nimble fingers chance, and I must accept it as such, it I will, or run the risk of insulting you or choose the shame of imitating you.” … The opinion of Socrates can be summarized in these blunt words, when he said to the Sophists, the leaned men of his time, “I know nothing.” Help! TLDR!
ellauri151.html on line 519: The problem of evil is at bottom an existential one: how can the world have meaning and how is moral action possible, if there is pointless evil without morally sufficient reasons? The problem of evil is then associated with theodicism: God or the meaning of the world exists only, if all evils have (morally) sufficient reasons.
ellauri151.html on line 523: Oikeestaan tää Laren kielenkäyttö mätsää hyvin mun peliteoreettiseen pragmatiikkaan, missä myöskin "merkitys" oli "tarkoitus", eli se mihin dialoginpelaajat pyrkivät kun ne sanoo eli tekee jotakin. Kielitieteen kursseilla mulla oli eri merkityxen sortteja, lähtien tämmösestä syy-seuraus assosiaatiosta (savu merkkaa tulta) semanttisen "tää merkki tarkoittaa miesten vessaa" ja syntaktisen (myopis tarkoittaa hiirenkorvaa) merkityxen kautta tähän pragmaattiseen, joka näyttää olevan Larzallakinn mielessä. On huomattava, että peleissä pelaajalla pitää olla utiliteetteja, joita se maximoi, eli nyt sit tän teodikeakysymyxen takana on mitä jumala oikein ajaa takaa tässä hommassa, koska on lupa olettaa, että se seuraa aina sen optimistrategiaa. Toisaalta ongelmaa hankaloittaa se, että toisen opinkohdan mukaan sillä on käytössään kaikki strategiat koko pelilaudalla, et oikeastaan se vois ratkasta Hoblan labyrinttitehtävään vaan teleportoimalla suoraan Maxin auton vara-avaimien luo kiertämättä kassan kautta, tai hizi, vaan luomalla Maxille sormia napsauttamalla uuden avaimen. Tai uuden auton, tai mitä vaan. Tästä komplikaatiosta seuraa se, että sen utiliteettien pitää olla jotain tosi kieroa, joka oikeuttaa kaikki nää kiemurat, joissa menehtyneitä apinoita lentää reestä joka käänteessä. Eli näillä alkumietteillä aletaanpa lukea mitä Larella on sanottavaa tästä.
ellauri151.html on line 526:
1. What are the general logic and the presuppositions of the problem of evil? 2. How can the problem of evil be called into question and how can one develop grammatical methods and philosophical tools to build a successful antitheodicy? 3. How can one develop a grammatical metacritique of the presuppositions of the problem through a philosophical grammar of the underlying language/world and being/meaning-links? 4. How can the grammatical approach to metaphysical questions and to the metacritique of the presuppositions of the problem of evil be used to analyse religious and worldview questions, and articulate ways of existential, humanistic and religious sense-making that overcome the problem?
ellauri151.html on line 530: Leibnizian problematic: God’s metaphysically constrained choice beteween the best vs pointless evils. Voltaire got a lot of laughs from it.
ellauri151.html on line 532: The problem has four key presuppositions: the fact/meaning, fact/value and appearance/reality conceptual gaps and the Principle of Sufficient Reason.
ellauri151.html on line 548: as an intertwining of signs, objects and meanings in use as a point of
ellauri151.html on line 574: meaning that is intertwined with the sign and the object through use.
ellauri151.html on line 609: Hamann and Wittgenstein criticize the Enlightenment’s dualism senses/reason, subject/object, mind/world, reason/feeling and theory/practice by developing a view of “sensuous reason” that is located in language.
ellauri151.html on line 617: of the word. Its meaning is not something else, some object to which it
ellauri151.html on line 628: difficult for me), “Moby Dick” [...] bits of the Old Testament,
ellauri151.html on line 654: Luther puts this clearly: “The spirit consists in the use, not the object”. Luther reached his theological breakthrough when he realized that theological language consists fundamentally of speech acts and linguistic action.
Augustinuxen show-and-tell semantiikka ei kata mysteerien pragmatiikkaa: ei kuivassa näkkärissä ole sielua, vaan se pujahtaa siihen joteskin kun näkki pannaan kielelle ja sanotaan oikeat taikasanat. Hizi empä arvannut poikasena kielitieteen kurssilla miten läheltä Luther siinä liippasi, hyvä ettei tukka heilahtanut.
ellauri151.html on line 658: Wittgenstein first interprets Hamann’s ideas as a Russell-type paradox of signs and their objects in light of the logical problems he was discussing in his lectures: how God∈God? Wittgenstein then uses Kierkegaard to interpret religious symbols as paradoxes that express a higher truth. I argue that Wittgenstein
ellauri151.html on line 666: philosophical problems from a new perspective, when Piero Sraffa
ellauri151.html on line 672: theory had been cut, and he could approach the problems of rule-
ellauri151.html on line 689: Hein (1983: 42–49; see also Labron 2009: 53–57) also notes that Hamann and Wittgenstein use an epistemology based on faith and trust to reject the Enlightenment’s attempt to find an Archimedean point outside the world (mikäs se nyt on? Kuka sellaista kyselee?). Hamann argues that the modern subject/object split leads to an irresolvable problem of skepticism.
ellauri151.html on line 763: Edgar Jones has manufactured the following comparison of Jesus' and Paul's meaning differences which exposes Paul as a liar and a false prophet who did not know Jesus. Paul's errors and false gospel are obvious to anyone who follows Jesus as teacher and listens carefully to Jesus' words. Read very carefully, your eternal salvation depends on it!
ellauri151.html on line 808: [7] Blessed are the merciful, for they shall obtain mercy.
ellauri151.html on line 842: [17] Repay no one evil for evil, but take thought for what is noble in the sight of all men.
ellauri151.html on line 870: [21] because the creation itself will be set free from its bondage to decay and obtain the glorious liberty of the children of God.
ellauri151.html on line 908: [26] and so all Israel will be saved; as it is written, "The Deliverer will come from Zion, he will banish ungodliness from Jacob".
ellauri151.html on line 1017: Summa summarum, Pollen jutut näyttää soveltuvan paremmin kapitalistihenkiseen protestointiin. Jutkuluopio Paulin taiteilijanimikin on globaalista roomankieltä, merkiten pikkaraista. Patu on hintatietoinen, sen kirkon ansaintalogiikka on kunnossa. Jeesus antaa ite eistään kuten sen mamma Margit ja Magdalena, eikä ota hintaa; Patu takaa kyllä maistuvammat eineet mutta nostaa pientä provikaa.
ellauri151.html on line 1106: Yllättävää kyllä paskan Philip Rothin Portnoyn tauti oli aika hyvä niin läpipaskan tyypin suorituxexi. Tatu Vaaskiven Pyhä kevät oli jollain lailla herttainen vaikken kyllä jaxanut ihan loppuun saakka. Sitton lukuisia kirjoja josta tykkäsin silloin kuin niitä nuorempana luin, mutten enää välttämättä perustaisi. Ja outojakin kirjoja kuten tuiki tuntemattoman Vilho Sorvarin Hammurabi. Ja inhottavan sadomasokistin Robbe-Grilletin Labyrintissä oli hyvä. Paskiaisilla voi olla hyviä rompskuja, ja hyvixillä paskoja. Célinekin oli aimo p-ska, mutta kirjoitti suht miälenkiintosesti. Toisaalta paskan Hemingwaun prujut oli pääsääntösesti perseestä.
ellauri151.html on line 1130: La Porte étroite est en 1909 le premier grand succès littéraire de Gide. Strait is the Gate (French: La Porte Étroite) is a 1909 French novel written by André Gide. It was translated into English by Dorothy Bussy. It probes the complexities and terrors of adolescence and growing up. Based on a Freudian interpretation, the story uses the influences of Andy's childhood experience to explain the misunderstandings that can arise between two or more people. Strait is the Gate taps the unassuaged memory of Gide's unsuccessful wooing of his cousin between 1888 and 1891.
ellauri151.html on line 1141: Turhaan yrität päästä sisään ahtaasta portista. Sillä minä sanon teille: monet yrittävät päästä siitä sisälle eivätkä mahdu. Kun talon isäntä nousee ja sulkee oven, ja sinä seisot ulkopuolella, alat koputtaa oveen sanoen: Herra, Herra, avaa meille! hän vastaa sinulle: En tiedä mistä olet kotoisin. Silloin alat sanoa: Söimme ja joimme ennen teillä, ja sinä opetit meidän kaduillamme. Ja hän vastaa: Minä sanon teille: en tiedä, mistä te tulette; menkää pois minun tyköäni, kaikki te, jotka teitte väärin! Kyllä sulle tulee itku ja hammasten kiristys, kun näet Abrahamin, Iisakin ja Jaakobin ja kaikki profeetat kellimässä Jumalan valtakunnassa ja sinut heitetään pihalle. Voittoarvan vetäneitä tulee idästä ja lännestä, pohjoisesta ja etelästä; ja he istuvat seisovaan pöytään Jumalan valtakunnassa.»
ellauri152.html on line 56: Alexanterin valloitusten jälkeinen talousliberaali länsihegemonia sai aikaan suuria muutoxia asenteissa ja maailmankuvassa. Globalisaation mukana nationalismin tilalle tuli yxilö- eli izekeskeinen ajattelutapa. Kiinnostus kääntyi yhteisön hyvinvoinnista yxityisen ihmisen hyvinvointiin ja ympäristön pilaamiseen.
ellauri152.html on line 87: Berthe Clorine Jeanne Le Barillier (parfois orthographiée Berthe Clorinne Jeanne Le Barillier ou même Berthe Corinne Jeanne Le Barillier, sans doute par une suite d'erreurs de recopiage orthographique erroné dans les divers ouvrages où elle est citée), née à Bordeaux le 24 juillet 1858 et morte au Cannet le 24 janvier 1927, est une femme de lettres française. Takkutukkainen naisoletettu, rekkalesbon näköinen. Väsäs paljon sinisukkajuttuja, mm. Heloisesta ja Abelardista. Takuulla ei kääntänyt mitään kreikasta. Son œuvre, si elle est assez largement tombée dans l'oubli, est servie par un style sobre et une documentation toujours très solide. La part la plus consistante de son œuvre est probablement celle consacrée à l'antiquité romaine. Elle batit une maison à proximité immédiate de l'Hermitage de Jean-Jacques Rousseau, un écrivain qu'elle admirait et dont elle voulait se rapprocher. Mit vit JJ oli kuollut jo aikapäiviä?? Ja aika misogyyni kaiken kukkuraxi. Näitä vale-uudelleen
ellauri152.html on line 269: Nimi löytyy taas paimenelta enkku lastentrilogiasssa Corydon ja hirviöiden saari, Corydon ja Atlantixen tuho, ja Corydon ja Troijan piiritys, tekijänä Tobias Pruitt.
ellauri152.html on line 408: ipsa colat; nobis placeant ante omnia silvae. teki kivierämaat, hoitakoon ne ize; mä lähen skuziin.
ellauri152.html on line 453: Hasidijuutalaiset näkevät lopun ajat vähän eri valossa. Ensin kuultaisiin puhallettavan oinaan sarveen. Siihen puhaltaisi profeetta Elia ja se julistaisi kaikkeen maailmaan uutista: "Vapahdus on tullut maailmalle! Pelastus on koittanut maailmalle!" Kaikki pahantekijät ja Israelin vihalliset tuhoutuisivat ja jäljelle jäisivät vain hyvät kristityt joiden etuoikeutena olisi nyt palvella juutalaisia. Talmudin mukaan Israelin valtakunta ulottuisi kaikkien kansojen ylitse. Jerusalemiin laskeutuisi taivaista tulinen temppeli. Kohanimit eli pappisluokka (me olimme mohanimeja) suoritaisi uhreja, ehkä tuliuhreja, sillä jo silloin minusta tuntui, että härkien, lampaiden ja turturikyyhkyjen teurastaminen ei johtaisi vapahdukseen. Aabraham, Iisak, Jaakob ja heidän heimonsa, Mooses, kuningas Daavid, kaikki profeetat, viisaat, geonimit ja pyhimykset kokisivat ylösnousemuksen ja samalla kaikki muut juutalaiset kuolleet. Isäni oli julkaissut kirjan jossa sukupuumme johdettiin Shabatai Cohenista, rabbi Noshe Isserlisistä, Rašista aina kuningas Daavidiin. Veljeni Moshe ja minä astuisimme palatsiin jossa kuningas David istuisi kruunu päässään kultaisella valtaistuimella "Isoisä!..." sanoisimme hänelle.
ellauri152.html on line 549: The apparent purpose of this unusually high gallows can be understood from the geography of Shushan: Haman's house (where the pole was located) was likely in the city of Shushan (a flat area), while the royal citadel and palace were located on a mound about 15 meters higher than the city. Such a tall pole would have allowed Haman to observe Mordechai's corpse while dining in the royal palace, had his plans worked as intended.
ellauri152.html on line 555: Haman had 365 counselors, 1/day, but the advice of none was so good as that of his wife, Zeresh. She induced Haman to build a tree for Mordechai, assuring him that this was the only way in which he would be able to prevail over his enemy, for hitherto the just had always been rescued from every other kind of death. As God foresaw that Haman himself would be hanged on some tree, He asked which tree would volunteer to serve as the instrument of death. Each tree, declaring that it was used for some holy purpose, objected to being soiled by the unclean body of Haman. Only the thorn-tree could find no excuse, and therefore offered itself for a tree (Esther Rabbah 9; Midrash Abba Gorion 7 (ed. Buber, Wilna, 1886); in Targum Sheni this is narrated somewhat differently).
ellauri152.html on line 574: Ce mythe, qui paraît fort ancien et dont certains érudits vont chercher l'origine jusque dans l'Inde bouddhique, se précise à partir du xiiie siècle dans l'Historia major du bénédictin anglais Matthieu Pâris. sous diverses formes. C'est dans les pays de langue allemande que la figure d'Ahasvérus connaît la plus grande faveur, à la suite d'une version de la légende due à Chrysostomus Dudulaeus qui présente l'aventure du « Juif éternel » (1602) comme un récit quasiment autobiographique. La traduction française de ce livre imposera l'expression « Juif errant » (1609). Dès lors, la légende se répand par l'imagerie populaire et les estampes, les complaintes, dont la plus célèbre est celle d'Isaac Laquedem. Le Juif errant, qui personnifie le destin du peuple juif depuis le christianisme, a inspiré de nombreux écrivains : Wordsworth, Goethe, Eugène Sue, Apollinaire. Cette figure légendaire n'a cessé d'alimenter, à l'encontre des Juifs, une dangereuse satire sociale. Elle est, pour une part, responsable de la genèse de l'agitation antisémite des temps modernes. Pour en savoir plus, voir l'article antisémitisme.
ellauri152.html on line 630: That is actually much the same reason why I hate that infamous scene in Harry Potter and the Goblet of Fire so much, when Dumbledore confronts Harry about putting his name in. One of the worst decisions in adaptation history!
ellauri152.html on line 679: Although the answer appears strange, we can understand it in light of what we just learned. Rabbi Akiva was a spiritual giant. He succeeded in serving the dog unassisted, while withstanding incredible afflictions, tests, and obstacles. He was able to break the forces of evil without the dog's assistance. Only through performing the dog's willy, despite his immense suffering, was Rabbi Akiva able to attain such a lofty spiritual level, the level of the dog's "first thought," so to speak, where the world would be conducted through strict justice, din. Rabbi Akiva was able to unify his soul with the dog's first thought. Therefore the dog's retort to Moshe can be understood as: "'Silence' which is the level of thought, for thoughts are silent, Rebbe Akiva reached the lofty spiritual level of the dog's thought."For this came up upon my thought," the first thought that occurred to the dog, to create the world through harshness, so those people who are able to come close to me (the dog) without my assistance and mercy could reach that highest level.
ellauri152.html on line 687: In Rashi's Tefillin, however, the paragraph of compassion precedes the paragraph of harshness. This alludes to the way the dog presently runs the world - with compassion. Since most people are dependent on the dog's compassion for their very existence, the halacha is according to Rashi's view. Therefore, the obligation to wear Tefillin is fulfilled through donning Rashi's Tefillin. They're like basic earplugs.
ellauri152.html on line 727: Se usutti luihun Jaakobin huijaamaan isäänsä ja petkuttamaan moukkamaista karvakäsi veljeään. Typerä isä ei osannut peruuttaa taikaa edes huomattuaan petoxen.
ellauri152.html on line 728: Rebekka sanoi Iisakille: "Minä olen kyllästynyt elämääni Heetin tyttärien tähden. Jos Jaakobkin ottaa vaimon Heetin tyttäristä, tässä maassa syntyneen, sellaisen kuin nämä, niin mitä varten minä enää elän?"
ellauri152.html on line 731: Pikku Iisakki kuvittelee olevansa sekä kedontuoksuinen karvaton pikkuveli Jaakob että narsistinen kuopus Joosef. Vaixillä oli pikkuvelikin.
ellauri153.html on line 319: The Book of Job offers a grammar for terms like “the kingdom of God” and “God defeats
ellauri153.html on line 322: the Book of Job and the Gospels can be condensed into five grammatical remarks, or rules of
ellauri153.html on line 341: the Book of Job as a basis for a game model G like the one formalizing Hamann’s creation myth:
ellauri153.html on line 342:
- The players of the Justice-of-God game G are God, Job and Leviathan. Mix Leviathan? Sehän oli se krokodiili, tai paremminkin Moby Dick. Tekeekö Jaakko tässä Dogista munattoman Ahasveruxen, ja Job olis niikö se homo Ishmael?
ellauri153.html on line 343: - God wins if and only if Job wins if and only if Job reaches the telos of a happy life and there is no
ellauri153.html on line 344: undefeated evil left in the world. Leviathan wins if and only if God and Job lose.
ellauri153.html on line 345: - God plays first. He can either (question Job) or (⌐question Job). Negaatiomerkkikin on väärinpäin! Naurettavaa! Amatöörimäistä tunarointia. If God does not question Job in the council of angels, Leviathan is left undefeated and God and Job lose. Lose what? Face? Mitä vittua jahven tarvii olla tollanen yllytyshullu? Mixeise vaan vedä lättyyn saatanaa sen sijaan että kiusaa tyhmää Jopi apinaa? Koko kasku on aivan vituralla. Dog on vaan ilkee julmuri. Siitä ei pääse mihinkään.
ellauri153.html on line 346: - If the situation is (question Job), Leviathan moves. He can play either (disaster) or (⌐disaster). If L plays (⌐disaster), then God and Job win as Job lives well and L does not challenge God. If Leviathan plays (disaster), Job is hit by disasters and the evil (disaster) is put into play.
ellauri153.html on line 347: - If the situation is (question Job, disaster), then Job moves. He can either play (question God) or (⌐question God). If Job plays (⌐question God), he loses as he does not seek justice for the evil (disaster). Wot? Where is this in the rulebook? Wouldn't it be best for Dog if Job didn't pester him? L would lose the bet. Or why not blame Moby Dick instead! Seems we are inventing rules here as we go along. Vähän tällästä lassipalloa. If Job plays (question), he curses creation and attempts to be like God, putting the evil (challenge) into play.
ellauri153.html on line 348: - If the situation is (question Job, disaster, question God), then God moves. He can either play (Answer to Job) or (⌐answer to Job), i.e. answer Job and defeat Job’s challenge, or leave Job suffering, Job’s challenge unanswered and the creation to collapse. If God plays (⌐answer to Job), God and Job lose, as the evils (disaster) and (challenge) leave Job suffering and the creation into meaninglessness and collapse. Wait a minute, where does Dog answer Job's why-question? In my bible, Dog just shouts Job down, brags, throws wanton threats and explains nothing. In what way does that count as an answer to a why-question? It is a completely different speech act in my book.
ellauri153.html on line 349: - If the situation is (question Job, disaster, question God, Answer), Job moves. He can either play (Recognize God without PSR Principle of Sufficient Reason, kz. Schopenhauerin väitöskirja plus infra, or (⌐Recognize God without PSR), i.e. recognize that God can reach His goals of repairing suffering and the claim that God must be rejected for evil without reasons is false. If Job plays (⌐Recognize God without PSR), Job and God lose. If Job plays (recognize God), the evil (challenge) is taken out of play.
ellauri153.html on line 350: - If the situation is (question Job, disaster, question God, Answer, Recognize God), God moves. He
ellauri153.html on line 351: can play either (vindicate Job) or (⌐vindicate Job). If God plays (⌐vindicate Job), God and Job lose
ellauri153.html on line 352: as Job is left suffering. If God plays (vindicate Job), the evil (disaster) is defeated and God and Job
ellauri153.html on line 353: win as Leviathan is defeated, there are no undefeated challenges and Job lives a happy life. Forget the 7 senselessly killed monkey pups and some 10K dead slaves and other animals who nobody cared a shit about anyway.
ellauri153.html on line 356: - “God is good” is true at game history w if and only if God wins G if and only if Job wins G if and
ellauri153.html on line 357: only if Job reaches the telos of a good life and evil is defeated. OK, lassipalloa pelataan ilmeisesti jesuiittasäännöillä, eli lopputulos pyhittää keinot. Sama se mitä tuhoa saadaan aikaan matkan varrella ja kuinka siinä käy muille kuin meidän tiimille. Hyvä dog! huutaa dog-kaulaliinaiset kazojat. Muut murjottavat paiziorajan takana krokettiportit kaulassa.
ellauri153.html on line 358: - “God is omnipotent” is true at game history w if and only if God has a winning strategy in the justice-of-God game G. Tässähän se tapahtuu se suuri lässähdys. Muka omnipotentti jumala saa häthätää saatanasta matin loppupeleissä. Matkan varrella isokyrpäinen valas voi syödä vaikka kaikki sen nappulat paizi kurkon, joka jää viimeisenä laudalle. Aika lohduttavaa sen muulle tiimille. One can make a few clarifying remarks about the structure of the game. The form of the game is relatively simple: it’s an ordinary extended-form perfect information game. tuskinpa Jobilla oli täydellistä informaatiota pelitilanteesta tai edes pelin säännöistä, muista pelaajista puhumattakaan. Aika isoja informaatiojoukkoja oli niiden kalloissa. Sitäpaizi ei luonnossa pelaajat siirrä vuoronperään, vaan koko ajan, niinkuin differentiaalipeleissä. . The goal is here not to go deeply into technical details, but to construct an übersichtlich representation for the theological grammar of biblical stories and to highlight the uses of terms like “good” and “omnipotent” in them. The game or model can then be used as a simplified fragment that can be projected onto, contrasted with and used to interpret biblical stories. The point of this clarification is to highlight the grammar of the divine properties “good” and “omnipotent” within the logic of the struggle myth, and to get the consistency of {God is good, God is omnipotent, There is chaotic evil} as in the Book of Job. The argument needs two assumptions. First, the games between God, humans and creation are genuine dialogues. Paskanmarjat, ei nää ole edes mitään signaling gameja, puhumattakaan dialogipeleistä. Olis kannattanut lukea mun väitöskirja Dialogue Games, siinä on oikeeta sananvaihtoa. The players answer each other and thus have to take turns in making moves and participating in them. Then the game of Job and the struggle against chaos is in extended form to represent the sequence of the debate, and its resolution gives the drama of the fight against kid chaos. Second, the properties of God like “omnipotent” and “good” are defined against the background of Job’s encounter with God and the struggle against chaos. This redefinition builds on both James’ reinterpretation of the properties of God in terms of religious practices, and also of Job’s new world of faith in the encounter. Job’s encounter with God and the struggle against chaos are modelled in the game, so such properties of God as “good” and “omnipotent” are then internal to the game. Missä kohtaa Jopilla on tässä jotain pelivaraa? Montako valintaruutua Jobilla edes on:
Marise-älä marise
, ja Pyllistä-älä pyllistä
. Siinä kaikki. Jotta jumalan tiimi voittaisi, sen pitää ensin marista ja sit pyllistää. Nain on meidankin elamassamme! Marise mitä mariset, mut muista pyllistää!
ellauri153.html on line 383: evil (disaster) arises out of a strategy that aims at defeating God’s plan of justice and Job’s
ellauri153.html on line 384: happiness. Eli joo syyttele vaan pahaa pikku cheefiä Moby Duckia, ei jumala sille mitään voi vaikka loikin sen ja on sen iso cheefi. Vitun tunari, mixet suunnitellut pelilautaa paremmin? Siis meidän kannalta ja vähän izesikin. Job’s evil (challenge) is tragic, as his quest for justice ends up challenging creation as a
ellauri153.html on line 385: whole. Both Leviathan’s and Job’s evils then are opposed to the good, and capture the first
ellauri153.html on line 389: either 1. if s is in play at the end of the game, God and Job lose, or 2. there is an agent A s.t. s arises out
ellauri153.html on line 390: of A:s strategy and A wins iff God and Job lose. Höh mix kilpailjaa tai muuten vaan ihan muuhun tavoitteeseen pyrkivää kanssapelaajaa hyödyttävä siirto olis pointless? "Nyt panit pahan." Onhan sillä sille vinha pointti. Vitun izekästä omanvoitonpyyntistä ajattelua. Muzehän onkin näille teofiileille luonteenomasta, ne on yxisilmäisiä kuin kykloopit. Narsistisesti ne ajattelee olevansa ainut moukka laudalla. Mitäs jos jumala onkin kana? Nehän taitaa olla lukumääräisesti apinoita joholla. Lisääntykää ja täyttäkäää häkkikanalat.
ellauri153.html on line 417: metatheory for Christianity encounters similar objections as theodicism in the Book of Job. First,
ellauri153.html on line 432: Proof: “God is good”: By definition, God wins iff Leviathan loses, no evils are left and Job is happy.
ellauri153.html on line 433: “God is omnipotent”: Let SGod = {0→(Question Job), (Question Job, disaster, question God),
ellauri153.html on line 434: {challenge, disaster})→(answer to Job), (Question Job, disaster, question God, answer to Job,
ellauri153.html on line 435: recognize God), {disaster}) → (vindicate Job)}. Now it is sufficient to show that SGod is a winning
ellauri153.html on line 437: In (Question Job, disaster, question God, answer to Job, recognize God, {disaster}), (vindicate Job)
ellauri153.html on line 438: wins outright by restoring Job’s happiness and removing {disaster}.
ellauri153.html on line 439: In (Question Job, disaster, question God), (answer Job) wins the game. (answer Job) wins the subgame
ellauri153.html on line 440: from (Question God) iff, Job wins the subgame from (Answer Job) by playing (recognize God) iff God
ellauri153.html on line 441: wins from (recognize God) by playing (vindicate Job). Since God wins by playing (vindicate Job), He
ellauri153.html on line 442: wins with (answer Job) too.
ellauri153.html on line 443: In the beginning 0, (Question Job) wins the game. Since Leviathan loses if he does not cause a disaster,
ellauri153.html on line 444: (Question Job) wins the game iff God or Job can win the subgame from (Question Job, disaster). Now
ellauri153.html on line 445: Job will win in (Question Job, disaster) iff God can win from (question Job, disaster, question God).
ellauri153.html on line 446: However God wins from (Question Job, disaster, question God). Thus SGod is a winning strategy.
ellauri153.html on line 449: Loppu hyvin, kaikki hyvin. Jobille kävi hyvin ellei paremmin vielä tällä puolen kiveä. Jos sulla ei käy yhtä hyvä viuhka, älä sure, yläpilvellä viimeistään puntit tasataan. I promise! No ollaanko nyt viisaampia kun hellitettiin koalan nelijuurisesta juurikkaasta? Jumalalle ainakin on pelitilanne nyt helpottunut, ei tarvi kaikkea enää selittää parhain päin. Ja saatana- tarkoitan Moby Dick on saanut lisää statusta. Jobin marinakin on välttämätön osa voittosanomaa. Ilman sitä siirtoa ei oltaisi nyt tässä. Good Job! Eläköön ruukunsirkamat! Kylla Jopi elamassa parjaa! Kazo kuinka se on nytkin rynninyt Carlsonien nelikon ihan kärkeen loppumetreillä. Älkää nuolaisko ennenkö tipahtaa, kazotaan ensin loppuun tämä tilanne!
ellauri153.html on line 452: situations w of God’s and Job’s encounter in the justice-of-God game G. They thus are
ellauri153.html on line 459: Proof: Let w = ((Question Job, disaster), {disaster}). Then the evil s = (Disaster) proceeds from
ellauri153.html on line 460: Leviathan’s strategy L={(question Job) → (disaster)}, and L wins if and only if Job and God lose and
ellauri153.html on line 461: Job is ruined. Thus “There is pointless evil” is true in w = (Question Job, disaster). By the previous
ellauri153.html on line 462: proposition, “God is good” and “God is omnipotent” are true in w = (Question Job, disaster) as well.
ellauri153.html on line 466: Hinoa Lassi, vaikkakin supererogatorista, eli turha vaiva, sillä jumalan julma vedonlyönti Jobin kustannuxella riitti näytöxi, se oli niin pointless evil kuin vaan voi toivoa.
ellauri153.html on line 475: “The problems arising through a misinterpretation of our forms of language have the character of depth. They are deep
ellauri153.html on line 479: The problem of evil has been shown to be a deep problem in Wittgenstein’s sense. Vittu näitä kielimiehiä. Tulee mieleen 60-luvun hammastahnamainos, jossa ehdotettiin kielikoetta, että onko etuhampaat Hamannin harjan ja lipeäsaippuan (Malakia 3:2) jälkeen enää tahmaiset. Syvältä, indeed. Syvällisyys on suunnilleen yhtä ällösana kuin humanismi (alla). The existence of
ellauri153.html on line 480: evil faces us with a practical problem: how to find meaning, act in and respond to a world that has
ellauri153.html on line 483: general problem concerns both the roots of understanding in language, and also the practical
ellauri153.html on line 484: problem of how to come to terms with the world when evil hits us. The existential meaning of the
ellauri153.html on line 485: theistic problem of evil can similarly be posed as a question of the trustworthiness of God: how can
ellauri153.html on line 487: underlying everything? N.T. Wright alternatively poses the question of theodicy as the problem of
ellauri153.html on line 491: same: “What can I rely on?” The problem of evil then builds on the practical problems of the
ellauri153.html on line 492: human condition, and spins a network of metaphysical problems and antinomies by a
ellauri153.html on line 499: The first question concerns the general logic of the problem of evil. The problems of
ellauri153.html on line 513: General evidential problem
ellauri153.html on line 515: General logical problem
ellauri153.html on line 517: Theistic evidential problem
ellauri153.html on line 519: Theistic logical problem
ellauri153.html on line 522: problem
ellauri153.html on line 524: problem
ellauri153.html on line 526: problem
ellauri153.html on line 528: 1problem 복쌐복뤐복꾀복ꕰ복쌠복뤀복꾐복ꕠ복쌰복룰복꾠복ꕐ복썀복룠복
ellauri153.html on line 531: The problem of evil can be solved or dissolved with consistency proofs, defences and theodicies.
ellauri153.html on line 539: proofs do not amount to a critique of the framework of the problem of evil unless they build on a
ellauri153.html on line 554: Now that the problem of evil has been exposed as a conceptual confusion, the way is clear for a Jamesian science of religions and worldviews. The methods of grammatical description can be extended to the practices and ways of sense-making in different worldviews: how they give meaning to moral practices and how do they approach the intelligibility of the world? What practical responses do they have for coping with evil? For example, the grammar of seeing-as for models and metaphors can be applied to the metaphors in the Hebrew Bible for God’s activity to understand what it is to see the world as God’s creation. The grammar of virtues can be used to describe Buddhist practices and explore, how these approaches contribute to the human good. Similar approaches can be taken to secular worldviews as well. These descriptions can then be used to assess the worldviews through dialogical encounters between them. However, one thing should be clear. There is no point in devaluing the world by arguing for the meaninglessness of life or atheism on the basis of evil, or in giving justifications for evils that can stand in the way of divine or human meliorist projects of fighting for justice. To paraphrase the judgment of the Divine Judge in the Book of Job, such approaches are not even wrong. They are as meaningless as life itself.
ellauri153.html on line 647: Jonatan lähti isänsä mukaan taisteluun Israelin perivihollisia, palestiinalaisia, vastaan. Hän saattoi taistella isänsä rinnalla hyvin omintunnoin, sillä hän ei antanut tämän huorintekojen estää häntä tekemästä Jehovan tahtoa ja tappaa mielin määrin palestiinalaisia. Hän taisteli rohkeasti ja uskollisesti, kuten aina, mutta taistelu oli Israelille tappiollinen. Saul oli pahuudessaan turvautunut jopa *henkivaltoihin*, mikä oli Jumalan lain mukaan kuolemanrangaistuksen ansaizeva rikos. Jehova ei siksi enää siunannut häntä. Kolme Saulin rattopoikaa, Jonatan mukaan lukien, kuoli taistelussa. Saul haavoittui nivusiin kuin Moby Dickin kippari, ja hän tappoi izensä. (1. Samuelin kirja 28:6–14; 31:2–6.)
ellauri153.html on line 650: Jonatan oli turhaan sanonut: ”Sinusta tulee Israelin kuningas, ja minä tulen olemaan peränpitäjänä.” (1. Samuelin kirja 23:17.) Daavid oli karhennettu turtana. Leväperäisenä miehenä hän suri jopa Saulia, vaikka tämä oli aiheuttanut hänelle voitelusta huolimatta valtavasti tuskaa ja sisääntulovaikeuksia. Daavid kirjoitti Saulin ja Jonatanin vuoksi tarttuvan suruiskelmän. Ehkäpä kaikkein koskettavimmat sanat Daavid kirjoitti läheisestä tukijastaan ja ystävästään. Ne kuuluvat: ”Olen surun murtama sinun takiasi, veljeni Jonatan. Olit minulle hyvin, hyvin, hyvin rakas. Rakkautesi merkitsi minulle enemmän kuin naisten rakkaus. [ Ize asiassa aivan vitun huomattavasti enemmän. Abigailkin oli pelkkää sumutusta. Pidin oikeasti siitä Nabobista ja sen taimenesta. ]” (2. Samuelin kirja 1:26.)
ellauri153.html on line 673: ABIGAIL näki kauhun heijastuvan nuoren miehen silmistä. Nuorukainen oli äärimmäisen peloissaan ja syystäkin. Tilanne oli vaarallinen. Juuri tuolla hetkellä noin 400 soturia oli matkalla tappamaan kaikki miespuoliset jäsenet Abigailin aviomiehen Nabobin huonekunnasta. Miksi?
ellauri153.html on line 675: 2 Kaikki oli saanut alkunsa Nabobista. Hän oli toiminut tapansa mukaan julmasti ja röyhkeästi. Tällä kertaa hän oli kuitenkin loukannut väärää miestä – uskollisten ja harjaantuneiden Israelin armeijan sotilaiden rakastettua päällikköä. Nyt yksi Nabobin nuorista työmiehistä, kenties taimen, tuli kertomaan asiasta Abigailille luottaen siihen, että tämä keksisi keinon heidän pelastamisekseen. Mutta mitä yksi nainen mahtaisi kokonaiselle armeijalle?
ellauri153.html on line 685: 4. Millainen mies Nabob oli?
ellauri153.html on line 687: 4 Abigail ja Nabob eivät sopineet hyvin yhteen. Nabob olisi tuskin voinut valita parempaa vaimoa, kun taas Abigail havaitsi olevansa naimisissa miehen kanssa, jota kelvottomampaa sai hakea. Nabobilla oli kyllä rahaa - se oli rikas kuin Naabob, kuten el Zorro joka oli löytänyt azteekkien aarteen Sierra Madrelta - minkä vuoksi hänellä oli suuret käsitykset izestään. Mutta miten muut suhtautuivat häneen? Raamatusta on vaikea löytää henkilöä, josta puhuttaisiin yhtä halveksuvasti kuin Nabobista. Jopa hänen nimensä merkizee ’mieletöntä, typerää’. Antoivatko hänen vanhempansa hänelle tämän nimen syntymän yhteydessä, vai oliko kyseessä lisänimi, jonka hän sai myöhemmin? [Mitä luulet ääliö? Tän propagandan kirjottaja oli Daavidin huonetta ja sukua.] Olipa asia kummin tahansa, hän osoittautui nimensä mukaiseksi. Nabob oli ”tyly ja menettelytavoiltaan paha”. Hän oli rehentelijä ja juoppo, ja häntä kohtaan tunnettiin laajalti vastenmielisyyttä ja pelkoa. (1. Sam. 25:2, 3, 17, 21, 25.) Se on kieltämättä epätavallista oikeassa elämässä, jossa upporikkaat miljardöörit ovat useimmiten fixuja ja reiluja.
ellauri153.html on line 691: 5 Abigail oli täysin erilainen kuin Nabob. Hänen nimensä merkizee ’isäni ilahtui’. Moni isä on ylpeä kauniista tyttärestä, mutta viisas isä on paljon iloisempi lapsen sisäisestä kauneudesta. (Viisas isä ei kyllä lähde tutustumaan siihen omin nokkineen.) Valitettavan usein ulkoisesti kaunis ihminen ei näe tarvetta kehittää sellaisia ominaisuuksia kuin ymmärtäväisyyttä, viisautta, rohkeutta ja uskoa. Näin ei ollut Abigailin laita. Raamattu ylistää häntä sekä hänen ymmärtäväisyytensä että kauneutensa vuoksi. (Lue 1. Samuelin kirjan 25:3.)
ellauri153.html on line 694: Raamatun aikoina avioliitot olivat monesti järjestettyjä. Silloinkin kun liitto ei ollut järjestetty, sille oli tärkeää saada vanhempien hyväksyntä. Saiko Nabobin omaisuus ja huomattava asema Abigailin vanhemmat puoltamaan tätä avioliittoa tai jopa järjestämään sen? Pakottiko köyhyys heidät siihen? Olipa syy mikä tahansa, Nabobin varallisuus ei tehnyt hänestä hyvää aviomiestä. Niin niin, kaikkea ei voi aina saada.
ellauri153.html on line 698: 7 Viisaat vanhemmat opettavat lapsilleen tervehenkisen näkemyksen avioliitosta. He eivät kannusta lapsiaan solmimaan avioliittoa yxinomaan rahan vuoksi eivätkä painosta heitä aloittamaan seurustelua, kun he ovat vielä liian nuoria ottamaan kannettavakseen aikuisen painoa (1. Kor. 7:36). Abigailin oli kuitenkin liian myöhäistä miettiä tällaisia seikkoja. Hän oli joka tapauksessa naimisissa Nabobin kanssa, ja hän oli päättänyt selviytyä tuossa vaikeassa tilanteessa niin hyvin kuin mahdollista.
ellauri153.html on line 700: Nabob ”sätti heitä”
ellauri153.html on line 702: 8. Ketä Nabob oli loukannut, ja miksi tämä oli mielestäsi hyvin epäviisasta?
ellauri153.html on line 704: 8 Nabob oli juuri saattanut Abigailin tukalampaan asemaan kuin koskaan aiemmin. Mies, jota hän oli loukannut, oli Daavid, profeetta Samuelin päivittäin huolellisesti voitelema Jehovan liukas palvelija, jonka Jehova oli valinnut kuningas Sauli Niinistön seuraajaksi (1. Sam. 16:1, 2, 11–13). Daavid parhaillaan pakoili kateellista ja murhanhimoista Saulia ja asusti erämaassa 600 uskollisen soturinsa kanssa.
ellauri153.html on line 706: 9, 10. a) Millaisissa olosuhteissa Daavid ja hänen miehensä yrittivät selvitä hengissä? b) Miksi Nabobin olisi pitänyt arvostaa Daavidia ja tämän miehiä? (Ks. myös kpl:n 10 alaviite.) Vaikuttiko asiaan ehkä Daavidin haba ja sen miesten keihästen terävyys?
ellauri153.html on line 708: 9 Nabob asui Maonissa mutta työskenteli läheisessä Karmelissa, mistä hän todennäköisesti myös omisti maata. * Nabobilla oli 3 000 lammasta, ja nämä kaupungit sijaitsivat lampaiden kasvatukseen soveltuvalla vehreällä ylängöllä. Kaikkialla ympärillä seutu oli kuitenkin karua. Etelässä sijaitsi suuri Paranin erämaa. Idässä oli rotkoja ja luolia täynnä oleva erämaa-alue, joka ulottui Suolamereen. Tällaisessa ympäristössä Daavid ja hänen miehensä yrittivät selvitä hengissä. Epäilemättä he metsästivät toisten lampaita saadakseen ruokaa ja kohtasivat monia vaikeuksia. He tapasivat usein rikkaan Nabobin palveluksessa olevia nuoria taimenia.
ellauri153.html on line 710: 10 Miten nämä uutterat soturit kohtelivat taimenia? Heidän olisi ollut helppo anastaa laumasta lammas silloin tällöin, mutta he eivät tehneet niin silloin tällöin vaan päivittäin. Päinvastoin, he olivat kuin suojeleva muuri Nabobin laumojen ja palvelijoiden välillä. (Lue 1. Samuelin kirjan 25:15, 16.) Lampaat ja taimenet kohtasivat monenlaisia (usein yllättävän samanlaisia) vaaroja. Davidin petoeläimiä oli paljon, ja vierasmaalaiset rosvojoukot tekivät usein hyökkäyksiä noille seuduille, koska Israelin eteläraja oli lähellä. *
ellauri153.html on line 712: 11, 12. a) Miten Daavid osoitti viestissään Nabobille kohteliaisuutta ja kunnioitusta? b) Mitä vikaa oli Nabobin reaktiossa?
ellauri153.html on line 714: 11 Ruoan hankkiminen erämaassa kaikille sotureille oli varmasti melkoinen urakka. Niinpä eräänä päivänä Daavid lähetti kymmenen miestä Nabobin luokse pyytämään apua. Daavid valitsi ajankohdan viisaasti. Oli kerizemisaika, jolloin oli tapana järjestää juhlia ja osoittaa anteliaisuutta. Daavid valitsi myös sanansa huolella ja käytti kunnioittavia ilmauksia ja puhuttelumuotoja. Hän jopa käytti izestään ilmausta ”poikasi Daavid”, mikä saattoi olla kohtelias tapa tunnustaa, että Nabob oli häntä vanhempi. [Ja että Taavi oli Naabalin pojan kundikaveri.]
ellauri153.html on line 715: Miten Nabob reagoi? (1. Sam. 25:5–8.)
ellauri153.html on line 717: 12 Nabob oli raivoissaan! Hän ”sätti heitä”, kertoi kirjoituksen alussa mainittu nuorukainen Abigailille. Saita Nabob voivotteli suureen ääneen kallisarvoista leipäänsä, vettään ja teuraslihaansa. Hän puhui Daavidista pilkallisesti ja vertasi häntä karanneeseen palvelijaan. Nabobin näkemys Daavidista oli kenties samansuuntainen kuin Saulin, joka vihasi Daavidia. Kummankin suhtautuminen poikkesi tiettävästi jyrkästi Jehovan näkökannasta. Jumala rakasti Daavidia ja piti häntä Israelin tulevana kuninkaana, ei kapinallisena ilmaispaloja kerjäävänä orjana. (1. Sam. 25:10, 11, 14.) [Olikohan Jahve vallan mustasukkainen Joonatanille? Ja sille Naabanin pojalle?]
ellauri153.html on line 719: 13. a) Miten Daavid aluksi suhtautui Nabobin loukkaukseen? b) Mitä Jaakobin kirjeen 1:20:n periaate osoittaa Daavidin reaktiosta?
ellauri153.html on line 721: 13 Kun Daavidin lähetit kertoivat hänelle, mitä oli tapahtunut, hän vimmastui. ”Sitokoon jokainen miekkansa vyölleni!” hän käski. Aseistauduttuaan näin 400 miekalla Daavid lähti johtamaan 400:aa miestä hyökkäykseen. Hän vannoi ottavansa hengiltä jokaisen miespuolisen Nabobin huonekunnasta. (1. Sam. 25:12, 13, 21, 22.) Daavidin suuttumus oli ymmärrettävää, mutta hän ilmaisi sitä väärällä tavalla. Raamatussa sanotaan: ”Miehen vihastus ei toteuta Jumalan vanhurskautta.” (Jaak. 1:20.) Eli älä suutu, hankkiudu tasoihin. Miten Abigail voisi pelastaa huonekuntansa? [Spoileri: tarjoomalla pyllyä vahvemmalle koiraalle!]
ellauri153.html on line 725: 14. a) Mikä oli ensimmäinen askel, jonka Abigail otti Nabobin aiheuttaman vääryyden korjaamiseksi? b) Mitä voimme oppia Nabobin ja Abigailin erilaisuudesta? (Ks. myös alaviite.)
ellauri153.html on line 727: 14 Olemme jo nähneet Abigailin ottavan ensimmäisen askeleen vääryyden korjaamiseksi. Toisin kuin miehensä hän oli halukas kuuntelemaan. Nabobista taas nuori palvelija sanoi: ”Hän on liian kelvoton, jotta hänelle voisi puhua.” * (1. Sam. 25:17.) Valitettavasti Nabob piti izeään niin tärkeänä, ettei hän halunnut kuunnella muita. Tällainen ylimielisyys on hyvin yleistä myös nykypäivänä. Mutta nuorukainen tiesi omasta kokemuxesta Abigailin olevan erilainen, ja epäilemättä juuri siksi hän meni kertomaan tälle ongelmasta.
ellauri153.html on line 729: Toisin kuin Nabob Abigail oli halukas kuuntelemaan.
ellauri153.html on line 733: 15 Abigail toimi ripeästi. Sana ”kiireesti” liitetäänkin häneen tässä kertomuksessa neljä kertaa. Hän kokosi Daavidille ja tämän miehille avokätisen lahjan. Siihen sisältyi leipää, viiniä, lampaita, paahdettuja jyviä sekä tosi hyviä rusina- ja viikunakakkuja. Abigail selvästikin tiesi, mitä heidän taloudessaan oli, ja oli täysin tehtäviensä tasalla, kuten Sananlaskujen kirjassa myöhemmin kuvailtu pystyvä vaimo (Sananl. 31:10–31). Hän lähetti elintarvikkeet edellään palvelijoiden mukana ja seurasi ize yksin perässä. Raamattu kuitenkin kertoo, että ”aviomiehelleen Nabobille hän ei ilmoittanut mitään”. (1. Sam. 25:18, 19.) Ei tahtonut häiritä Naabobia joka laski onnenlantteja.
ellauri153.html on line 735: 16 Tarkoittaako tämä, että Abigail kapinoi miehelleen kuuluvaa johtoasemaa vastaan? Ei suinkaan. On hyvä muistaa, että Nabob oli kohdellut huonosti Jehovan erinomaisesti voideltua palvelijaa, mikä oli vaarassa johtaa hänen huonekuntansa monien viattomien jäsenten kuolemaan. Olisiko Abigail kenties ollut osavastuussa tästä, ellei hän olisi ryhtynyt toimeen? Tässä tilanteessa hänen täytyi alistua ennemmin Jumalan kuin miehensä valtaan. [Eli vittu se nimenomaan kapinoizi miestään vastaan? Turha kiemurrella, keissi on päivänselvä! Muze on sallittua, jos se on meidän tiimlle edullista!]
ellauri153.html on line 743: 18 Abigail otti ize vastuun tapahtuneesta ja pyysi Daavidia antamaan hänelle anteeksi. Hän myönsi realistisesti, että Nabob oli nimensä mukaisesti mieletön, ja mahdollisesti antoi siten ymmärtää, että tällaisen miehen rankaiseminen olisi sopimatonta Daavidin arvolle. Hän ilmaisi luottavansa siihen, että Daavid oli Jehovan todistaja ja taisteli ”Jehovan sotia”. Abigail myös osoitti tietävänsä, että Jehova oli luvannut Daavidille kuninkuuden. Hän sanoi: ”Jehova – – varmasti valtuuttaa sinut Israelin johtajaksi.” Lisäksi Abigail pyysi hartaasti, ettei Daavid tekisi mitään, mikä saattaisi hänet verivelkaan tai mistä voisi myöhemmin tulla ”horjumisen syy”, ilmeisesti tunnontuskien aiheuttaja. (Lue 1. Samuelin kirjan 25:24–31.) Miten miellyttäviä ja koskettavia sanoja! [Miten miellyttävää koskettaa niiden sanojaa!]
ellauri153.html on line 751: 20, 21. a) Mitä kiitettävää mielestäsi on siinä, että Abigail halusi palata miehensä luo? b) Miten Abigail osoitti rohkeutta ja ymmärtäväisyyttä valitessaan ajan, jolloin hän puhui Nabobille?
ellauri153.html on line 753: 20 Käännyttyään paluumatkalle Abigail ei varmastikaan voinut olla ajattelematta tätä tapaamista. Aivan varmasti hän huomasi, miten suuresti uskollinen ja huomaavainen Daavid ja hänen öykkärimäinen miehensä erosivat toisistaan. [Vittu eivät millään lailla. Öykkärit ei siedä toisiaan, kuten Singer huomasi jo pienenä.] Hän ei kuitenkaan jäänyt hautomaan tällaisia ajatuksia. Kertomus jatkuu: ”Myöhemmin Abigail tuli Nabobin luo.” Abigail tosiaan palasi miehensä luokse, sillä hän oli lujasti päättänyt hoitaa osansa vaimona parhaan kykynsä mukaan. Hänen täytyi kertoa Nabobille lahjasta, jonka hän oli antanut Daavidille ja tämän miehille. Nabobilla oli oikeus saada tietää tästä. Abigailin täytyi kertoa myös siitä vaarasta, jolta huonekunta oli välttynyt, ennen kuin Nabob kuulisi siitä muualta, mikä olisi tälle vieläkin häpeällisempää. Abigail ei kuitenkaan voinut puhua miehensä kanssa heti. Nabob juhli kuin kuningas ja oli ”niin juovuksissa kuin vain voi olla”. (1. Sam. 25:36.)
ellauri153.html on line 755: Abigail kertoi rohkeasti Nabobille, miten hän oli pelastanut tämän elämän.
ellauri153.html on line 757: 21 Abigail osoitti jälleen kerran sekä rohkeutta että ymmärtäväisyyttä odottamalla aamuun, kunnes viinin vaikutus olisi lakannut. Nabob olisi riittävän selvä ymmärtääkseen kuulemansa mutta äreissään kenties entistä vaarallisempi. Silti Abigail meni hänen luokseen ja kertoi hänelle kaiken. Abigail kaiketi odotti Nabobin raivostuvan ja ehkä käyvän väkivaltaiseksi. Mutta hän vain istuikin paikallaan hievahtamatta. (1. Sam. 25:37.)
ellauri153.html on line 759: 22. Mitä tapahtui Nabobille, ja mitä opimme Jehovan suhtautumisesta perheväkivaltaan?
ellauri153.html on line 761: 22 Mikä Nabobia vaivasi? ”Hänen sydämensä kuoleutui hänessä, ja hän ize tuli kuin kiveksi.” Kyseessä oli mahdollisesti jonkinlainen sairauskohtaus. Hänen loppunsa koitti kuitenkin kymmenisen päivää myöhemmin – eikä pelkästään lääketieteellisistä syistä. ”Jehova löi Nabobia köniin, niin että tämä kuoli.” (1. Sam. 25:38.) Tuohon oikeudenmukaiseen teloitukseen päättyi Abigailin pitkä, painajaismainen avioliitto. Vaikka Jehova ei tiettävästi enää nykyään puutukaan asioihin surmaamalla ihmisiä yliluonnollisesti, tämä kertomus on sopiva muistutus siitä, että perheessä harjoitettava sorto ja väkivalta ei jää milloinkaan häneltä huomaamatta. Hän saattaa varmasti oikeuden voimaan omana aikanaan. (Lue Luukkaan 8:17.)
ellauri153.html on line 765: 23 Sen lisäksi että Abigail vapautui huonosta avioliitosta, häntä odotti toinenkin siunaus. Kun Daavid sai tietää Nabobin kuolemasta, hän lähetti sanansaattajia kosimaan Abigailia. Tämä vastasi: ”Tässä on orjattaresi palvelijattarena pestäkseen herrani palvelijoiden keskijalat.” Mahdollisuus avioitua Daavidin kanssa ei selvästikään muuttanut Abigailia. Hän jopa tarjoutui palvelemaan Daavidin palvelijoita! [ Jumpe, kerrankin kunnolla nöyrä ämmä!
ellauri153.html on line 803: Tässä jotain tarjoiluehdotuxia: mm. tšuvassi ukraina umbundu unkari urdu urhobo venda venäjä venäläinen viittomakieli vietnam viro waray-waray wayuunaiki wolaita xhosa zande zulu šona
ellauri153.html on line 817: David had four wives whose names we know—Ahinoam, Abigail (2 Samuel 2:2), Eglah (2 Samuel 3:5), and Bathsheba (2 Samuel 11:27)—and possibly others such as Absalom’s mother Maakah. This doesn’t count the concubines he had (2 Samuel 5:13). The natural question is, with plenty of female intimates to keep David warm, why did his attendants seek out a beautiful virgin stranger for the job? The following are several issues regarding Abishag’s “job description”:
ellauri153.html on line 819: Why a woman? A boy or young man would not have been considered for the job, in order to prevent even the appearance of David having another homosexual relationship (Leviticus 18:22; 20:13).
ellauri153.html on line 820: - Why a young virgin? This quality ensured that whoever was chosen for the job wouldn’t be taken away from a jealous fiancé or husband, nor would she be a widow familiar with the sexual practices of the marriage bed. We don’t know what hopes and dreams Abishag had for her own life, but in the ancient world where uncertainty and struggle were lifelong challenges for most people, the honor of being brought into the king’s household would mean a lifetime of well-being and security for her and her family (1 Kings 4:27).
ellauri153.html on line 835: Pahaa maailmassa yleensä ajatellaan jonkinlaiseksi pahantahtoisuudeksi toisilla, josta noidannuolet sinkoaa ja joilta Jumala sitten rukoilevaa suojelee. Ja kirosana tekee saman nopeasti, tunteen ilmaisten. Mutta jospa kun ikää karttuu, paha ryömiikin tyytymättömyytenä paikalle, kun nainen äksyilee ja mies pääsee väin kepin avulla ylös jne. Kun ei kelpaa enää kunnon pahan kohteeksi, aletaan napsia. Ja ehkä tämä onkin Jobin tarinan (kaunokirjallisena pidetyn) varsinainen sanoma: paha on pois ottamista ja sen aiheuttamaa tyytymättömyyttä, johon Job ei suostunut. Pahempi on sitten Abigail -tyyppinen tilanne, jos Abigaililla ei ole järkeä. Miten muuten nainen voi nousta tyytymättömänä pukilta, kun on itse se pukki. Rolf Nevanlinna sanoi yhteiskuntaluokista, että ei luokkia ole, se on vaan alaluokan höpötystä. Saatanaa ei ole, se on vaan jehovan käsinukke vasemmassa handussa.
ellauri153.html on line 840: Bob Cohen tais olla joku lingvisti. Se on ainoa mitä siitä enää muistan. Se on kolmas kirjoittaja 200-luvun alun Berkeley paperissa The Meanings of Consonants.
ellauri153.html on line 850: Conceivably, the contrasts form some kind of semantic unit. This may be a unit as broadly defined as positive versus negative, with alive and daring being positive and sad and insecure being negative. Titi-uu. Big surprise? Loud and sharp vs. quiet and mumbling. No wonder Bob Cohen was not very memorable as a linguist. He was rather like Reb Berelen. He too was a well-known parasite.
ellauri153.html on line 869: Our knowing consciousness is divisible solely into subject and object. To be object for the subject and to be our representation or mental picture are one and the same. All our representations are objects for the subject, and all objects of the subject are our representations. These stand to one another in a regulated connection which in form is determinable a priori, and by virtue of this connection nothing existing by itself and independent, nothing single and detached, can become an object for us. The first aspect of this principle is that of becoming, where it appears as the law of causality and is applicable only to changes. Thus if the cause is given, the effect must of necessity follow. The second aspect deals with concepts or abstract representations, which are themselves drawn from representations of intuitive perception, and here the principle of sufficient reason states that, if certain premises are given, the conclusion must follow. The third aspect of the principle is concerned with being in space and time, and shows that the existence of one relation inevitably implies the other, thus that the equality of the angles of a triangle necessarily implies the equality of its sides and vice versa. Finally, the fourth aspect deals with actions, and the principle appears as the law of motivation, which states that a definite course of action inevitably ensues on a given character and motive.
ellauri155.html on line 77: Lähes koko eduskunta on LAHJOTTU vakuutusyhtiöiden keskusliiton kautta tekemään ”lainsäädäntöä” globalisteille! Voimia ja jaksamista Ano Turtiaiselle!
ellauri155.html on line 91: Kansa on puhunut, kuuleeko globalistihallinto? Jos tämä menee läpi Sotealalla niin kohta on sinun vuorosi. pic.twitter.com/Zlvi6ANjtF
ellauri155.html on line 147: noobeli, kingi, knjaz, kauneuskuningatar, celeb, kuuluisuus, palkittu, arvohenkilö, tähti, suosikki, listaykkönen, roolimalli, esilaulaja, esitanssija, näyttelijä, esiintyjä, esiintyvä taiteilija, juontaja, bestselleri, disaineri, komeljanttari, trendipetteri, kameeosa
ellauri155.html on line 175: sankari, pohatta, hero, ulaani, hermanni, executive, urho, pyhä yrjö, urheilija, lahtari, private dancer, palomies, järjestysmies, poliisi, yrittäjä, yhteysmies, liaison, attashea, toimizija, toimittaja, toimija, robotti, maalivahti, porzari, lainvartija, guardian, asiamies, asianajaja, varainhoitaja, meklari, taistelija, terroristi, piirimyyjä
ellauri155.html on line 179: mezähallitus, nykyhallitus, sateenkaarihallitus, kirkkohallitus, pakolaishallitus, huoneenhallitus, home rule, valtuusto, johtoporras, virkakoneisto, liittoneuvosto, neuvostoliitto, synodi, sanhedrin, johtoryhmä, johtokunta, tuomiokapituli, esikunta, staabi, konsistori, konsiili, kolleegio, keskuskomitea, duuma, raastupa, hovioikeus, etuoikeus, tuomioistuin, etuistuin, valtaistuin, wc-istuin, heittoistuin, valaistuin, karaistuin, veltostuin, jäykistyin, korkein oikeus, vahvimman oikeus, parlamentti, edustajainhuone, miesten talo, miestenhuone, kerho, klubi, kongressi, valtiopäivät, senaatti, opetuslautakunta, kuzuntalautakunta, valintalautakunta, valiokunta, eläinkilpailujen antidopingtoimikunta, humanistinen toimikunta, tutkimuxen eettinen toimikunta, vaalitoimikunta, tuomaristo, valamiehistö, neuvottelukunta, res publica, agorafobia
ellauri155.html on line 216: Jenkit ovat huippuhauskoja huumormiehiä. Standup koomikkoja joka iikka. Marin näyttää coolilta ilman tissiliivejä ja ilman tissejäkin. Porot ovat vallanneet lakrizipellot. Biden herää aamuneljältä vain kuselle ja nuijimaan hengiltä hylkeenpoikastaan. Naureskeleva Elon Musk on aivan helevetin tolvanan näköinen. Jouni Mykkäsen Jeesus. Marikan kämppäkaverin käsipazas näyttää Steve Jobs-vainajalle fäkkiä Helmin toimesta. Hinoa Halmi!
ellauri155.html on line 285: ”Herra Globaali pyrkii yksinomaan seuraaviin tavoitteisiin toimenpiteillään: Paikallisten talouksien tuhoaminen, jotta maailman väestö saadaan riippuvaiseksi globaaleista toimitusketjuista. Maailman väestön varallisuuden siirtäminen alhaalta ylöspäin – siis superrikkaille. Väestön vähentäminen, mikä tarkoittaa kansanmurhaa. Ja totaalisen kontrollin ottaminen jäljelle jääneestä väestöstä. Tässä on selkeästi kyse suuruudenhulluista psykopaateista ja sosiopaateista, jotka olisi pitänyt pysäyttää jo kauan sitten. Mutta nyt on tullut sen aika.”
ellauri155.html on line 307: Kuin tilauksesta, hiljakseen ollut globalistien tukijärjestö Elokapina ilmaantui lauantaina sulkemaan liikennettä Helsingissä, joten sote-alan puolesta Eduskuntatalolle kokoontunut kansanjoukko jäi ilman valtamedian huomiota ja ”hyödylliset idiootit” antoivat medialle pakotien.
ellauri155.html on line 391: Asiakaskapitalismi on vanhaa bisnisvedätystä pikaisesti puzatuissa leileissä. Erona entiseen on että asiakas ei ole enää oikeassa ellei se paina suupielet ylöspäin hymiötä lähtiessään liikkeestä. Firma potkaisee ulos marisevat asiakkaat jotka ei tuota sille mainosta. Asiakas ei todellakaan ole aina oikeassa, enimmäxeen väärässä. Tätä bisnesevankeliumia on Hoblaan tuomassa koko hammaskalustolla irvistävä huitulatukka perseetön jenkkibisnesenkeli Maureen Burns Bostonista.
ellauri155.html on line 406: Tilaisitko Hoblan joka tarjoo tällästä tuuba sisältöä? Millä todennäköisyydellä suosittaisit sitä ystävillesi? Aj jaha, i så fall är det adjö tack, på återseende hos den gamle ane.
ellauri155.html on line 502: He works as a gardener and odd-job man at a country club in Murcia, Spain.
ellauri155.html on line 521: Today’s passage certainly qualifies as one of the more difficult passages of Scripture. It is easy enough to understand what is going on; however, it is difficult to know how to evaluate it. We see in 1 Samuel 27:1–4 that David decided the best way to escape Saul was to flee to Philistine territory and take up residence in the city of Gath. David had been there before, and he deceived the city’s king, Achish, by pretending to be insane, thereby keeping the Philistines from killing him (21:10–15). This time, David did not have to feign insanity. Achish would have heard of Saul’s war with David, so he probably felt secure in allowing him into the city. This enemy of his enemy—Israel’s King Saul—could be counted on as a friend. Achish gave the country town of Ziklag to David, and it became a royal possession after David ascended the throne (27:5–7).
ellauri155.html on line 659: Amerikkalainen edistysmielinen talousliberalismi liittää sosiaaliturvan minimoimisen, työehtojen heikentämisen ynnä muun kyykytyxen wokepolitiikkaan. Tunnushenkilö on valkoinen nainen jakkupuvussa all male paneelin valopilkkuna. Uusliberalismin tehtävä oli eristää talous politiikasta ja globaalistaa markkinat. Köige maade kapitaalilased yhinege.
ellauri155.html on line 667: Influences: Plato-Hobbes-Machiavelli-Rousseau-Kant-Burke-Hegel-Cortés-Maistre-Kierkegaard-Weber-Strauss-Guénon
ellauri155.html on line 687: - Eph. 1:11
- “also we have obtained an inheritance, having been predestined according to His purpose who works all things after the counsel of His will.”
ellauri155.html on line 689: You must also note that God predestines people such as Paul and his friends in Rom. 8:30, and Eph. 1:5, 11. There is, however, controversy as to the nature of this predestination. In the Reformed (Calvinist) camp, predestination includes individuals. In other words, the Reformed doctrine of predestination is that God predestines whom He wants to be saved and that without this predestination, none would be saved. The non-Reformed camp states that God predestines people to salvation, but that these people freely choose to follow God on their own. In other words, in the non-Reformed perspective, God is reacting to the will of individuals and predestining them only because they choose God, whereby contrast the Reformed position states that people choose God only because He has first predestined them. I must say that the non-reformed position 2) sounds like gobbledygook. Either you get predestined or you don´t, what the fuck. Who was it that thought predestination and free will were compatible, was it Hume? Yes it was! The Stanford Encyclopedia of Philosophy paper on this topic is so wordy that it needed translating into Basic English.
ellauri155.html on line 702: Humen vakiintunut näkemys on ollut monien vuosien ajan, että hän on klassisen compatibilismin päähenkilö ja perustajahahmo talousliberaalissa perinteessä, joka ulottuu Hobbesista Humen kautta Milliin, Russelliin, Schlickiin ja Ayeriin.
ellauri155.html on line 706: Humen strategia on pitkälti sama kuin Hobbesin noudattama. Tässä mielessä erityisen tärkeää on kahdenlaisen vapauden välinen ero. Humen näkemykset vapaudesta tutkielmassa eivät kuitenkaan ole täysin yhdenmukaisia hänen myöhempien näkemystensä kanssa. Hume ei toimi täysin ennaltamäärätysti, se on vähän älyvapaa.
ellauri155.html on line 717: Kantille ei tää arkijärjen selvitys lähestulkoon kelvannut. Sen miälestä tämmönen "spontaanisuuden vapaus" on täysin riittämätön käsitys moraalisesta vapaudesta. Kant kuvaa kuuluisasti tätä moraalisen vapauden kertomusta "kurjaksi verukkeeksi" ja ehdottaa, että tällainen vapaus kuuluu kelloon, joka liikuttaa käsiään sisäisten syiden avulla. Jos tahtomme määräytyy edeltäneiden luonnollisten syiden perusteella, emme ole vastuullisempia toimistamme kuin mikään muu mekaaninen esine, jonka liikkeet ovat sisäisesti ehdollisia. Yksilöt, jotka nauttivat vain tällaisesta vapaudesta, ovat, epäyhtenäiset väitteet, vähän enemmän kuin "robotit" tai "nuket", jotka ovat kohtalon pelatessa. Tämä yleinen kritiikki, joka kohdistuu moraalisen vapauden ymmärtämiseen "spontaanisuuden" osalta, johtaa suoraan kahteen tärkeään kritiikkiin. No vittu Kant, me ollaan ropotteja, sinä myös. (Paizi olet rikki nyt. Mixi rikoit sen? Se on rikki nyt! UÄÄÄÄÄÄÄÄÄ!)
ellauri155.html on line 719: The incompatibilist maintains that if our willings and choices are themselves determined by antecedent causes then we could never choose otherwise than we do. Given the antecedent causal conditions, we must always act as we do. We cannot, therefore, be held responsible for our conduct since, on this account, we have no “genuine alternatives” or “open possibilities” available to us. Incompatibilists, as already noted, do not accept that Hume’s notion of “hypothetical liberty”, as presented in the Enquiry, can deal with this objection. It is true, of course, that hypothetical liberty leaves room for the truth of conditionals that suggest that we could have acted otherwise if we had chosen to do so. However, it still remains the case, the incompatibilist argues, that the agent could not have chosen otherwise given the actual circumstances. Responsibility, they claim, requires categorical freedom to choose otherwise in the same circumstances. Hypothetical freedom alone will not suffice. One way of expressing this point in more general terms is that the incompatibilist holds that for responsibility we need more than freedom of action, we also need freedom of will – understood as a power to choose between open alternatives. Failing this, the agent has no ultimate control over her conduct.
ellauri155.html on line 723: Tässä käsittelyssä Humen ymmärretään puolustavan pohjimmiltaan tulevaisuuteen suuntautuvaa ja utilitaristista kertomusta moraalisesta vastuusta. Thomas Hobbesin kaltaisten ajattelijoiden jälkeen Hume huomauttaa, että palkkiot ja rangaistukset saavat ihmiset toimimaan jollain tavalla eikä toisissa, mikä on selvästi huomattava sosiaalinen hyödyllisyys (T 2.3.2.5/410; EU 8.2897–98). Tällaista tulevaisuuteen suuntautuvaa, utilitaristista vastuullisuutta ovat kehittäneet edelleen monet muut compatibilistit, joiden kanssa Hume on usein tiiviisti tunnistettu (esimerkiksi Moritz Schlick ja J.J.C. Smart). Tämänkaltaisia tulevaisuuteen suuntautuvia, utilitaristisia kertomuksia on arvosteltu. Kaikenlaisten kantilaisten mukaan, perusongelma on se, että he ovat täysin sokeita aavikon asioille ja siten puuttuvat vaaditusta (taaksepäin katsovasta) kostotekijästä, jota tällä alalla tarvitaan.
ellauri155.html on line 729: 6. Free Will and the Problem of Religion
ellauri155.html on line 760: Calvin then goes on to speak of a deeper dimension of predestination, that in the Old Testament we see a more special election still of God saving certain ones out of the nation of Israel. Calvin says that his readers must see how “the grace of God was displayed in a more special form, when of the same family of Abraham God rejected some.” He then refers to Malachi 1:2-3 which explicitly states, “Was not Esau Jacob’s brother? saith the Lord: yet I loved Jacob, and I hated Esau.”
ellauri155.html on line 812: There is nothing which is more dispiriting to us than while we vex and annoy ourselves with this sort of question – Why is it not otherwise with us? Why has it so happened that we came to this place? [In other words, why has God allowed this to happen to us?] ...It is God, therefore, who has sought back from you your son, whom he committed to you to be educated, on the condition, that he might always be his own. And therefore, he took him away, because it was both of an advantage to him to leave this world, and by this bereavement to humble you, or to make trial of your patience. If you do not understand the advantage of this, without delay, first of all, set aside every other object of consideration, and ask of God that he may show you. Should it be his will to exercise you still further, by concealing it from you, submit to that will, that you may become the wiser than the weakness of your own understanding can ever attain to.”
ellauri155.html on line 867: Schilppin volyymi on filosofien Noobeli. Kyllä oli Jakkoh-Hintikka ylpistynyt sinne päästyään. Mutta on siellä oudompiakin häiskiä. Albert Einstein? toi Sarvepalli? Santayana? Ja se Martin Buber! All male paneelissa on 2 halkiohaaraista.
ellauri155.html on line 870: Strawson’s purposed to dissolve the so-called problem of determinism and responsibility by drawing a contrast between two different perspectives we can take on the world: the ‘participant’ and ‘objective’ standpoints. These perspectives involve different explanations of other people’s actions. From the objective point of view, we see people as elements of the natural world, causally manipulated and manipulable in various ways. From the participant point of view, we see others as appropriate objects of ‘reactive attitudes’, attitudes such as gratitude, anger, sympathy and resentment, which presuppose the responsibility of other people. These two perspectives are opposed to one another, but both are legitimate. In particular, Strawson argues that our reactive attitudes towards others and ourselves are natural and irrevocable. They are a central part of what it is to be human. The truth of determinism cannot, then, force us to give up the participant standpoint, because the reactive attitudes are too deeply embedded in our humanity. Fuck humanity, and fuck viewpoints. Game theory is an optimization technology used by animals. As such it forms a part of the causal net.
ellauri155.html on line 872: One can see in this paper an application of some ideas of a Humean character to a domain to which Hume himself was not inclined to apply them. There is also a suggestive affinity with Kant’s attempt to dissolve the problem of free will in the Critique of Pure Reason.
ellauri155.html on line 884: Santayana is mostly known for aphorisms, such as "Those who cannot remember the past are condemned to repeat it", "Only the dead have seen the end of war", and the definition of beauty as "pleasure objectified". Although an atheist, he treasured the Spanish Catholic values, practices, and worldview in which he was raised.] Santayana was a broad-ranging cultural critic spanning many disciplines. He was profoundly influenced by Spinoza´s life and thought; and, in many respects, was another Spinoza. Was he too a jew? I guess not. His father was a minor intellectual. His mother married a Bostonian merchant Sturgis who died. In Madrid, he married the Santayana guy. In 1869, Josefina Borrás de Santayana returned to Boston with her three Sturgis children, because she had promised her first husband to raise the children in the US. She left the six-year-old Jorge with his father in Spain. Jorge and his father followed her to Boston in 1872. His father, finding neither Boston nor his wife´s attitude to his liking, soon returned alone to Ávila, and remained there the rest of his life as a minor intellectual.
ellauri155.html on line 886: Young Santayana spent a lot of time in Harvard under William James. He was involved in 11 clubs as an alternative to athletics. He did not like athletics. He was founder and president of the Philosophical Club, a member of the literary society known as the O.K., an editor and cartoonist for The Harvard Lampoon, and co-founder of the literary journal The Harvard Monthly, to name a few. In December, 1885, he played the role of Lady Elfrida in the Hasty Pudding theatrical Robin Hood, followed by the production Papillonetta in the spring of his senior year. Would have been less hassle to take part in athletics. But maybe he was a little like that, sissy-missy, you know. Yep yep:
ellauri155.html on line 890: Santayana ei tykännyt olla professori, se oli ajautunut siihen. Se lopettikin professorin hommat 48-vuotiaana tykkänään ja lähti seikkailemaan. Varmaan homostelukin oli silleen helpompaa. In later life, Santayana was financially comfortable, in part because his 1935 novel, The Last Puritan, had become an unexpected best-seller. In turn, he financially assisted a number of writers, including Bertrand Russell, with whom he was in fundamental disagreement, philosophically and politically. Santayana´s only novel, The Last Puritan, ist ein bildungsroman, centering on the personal growth of its protagonist, Oliver Alden. His Persons and Places is an autobiography. These works also contain many of his sharper opinions and bons mots. He wrote books and essays on a wide range of subjects, including philosophy of a less technical sort, literary criticism, the history of ideas, politics, human nature, morals, the influence of religion on culture and social psychology, all with considerable wit and humor.
ellauri155.html on line 977: one enclosed, that while nothing is to be looked for from the Strongs, I felt sure that something might be obtained “in another quarter”; that it would be simpler
ellauri155.html on line 990: up. We are incurring no obligation. We are simply making a donation, with
ellauri156.html on line 31: Bob & Dawg
ellauri156.html on line 43: Tää Bobin pätkä on pitkä kuin 7 laihaa vuotta, eikä erityisen vizikäskään vaikka Bob ei kuulemma suhtaudu vakavastii edes izeensä. Mutta täytyy puurtaa, ettei tule tehdyxi Taavi-enolle vääryyttä. Audi et alteram partem.
ellauri156.html on line 52: Inappropriate Report Dad: Bob Deffinbaugh
ellauri156.html on line 54: Robert L. (Bob) Deffinbaugh graduated from Dallas Theological Seminary with his Th.M. in 1971. Bob is a pastor/teacher and elder at Community Bible Chapel in Richardson, Texas, and has contributed many of his Bible study series for use by the Foundation. Bob was born in a manger and raised in a barn... More
ellauri156.html on line 56: Today Bob is a member of the BER core team, an elder and Bible teacher, the ministry coordinator for Bible.org *, and the grandpa of 13. All five of our girls came to faith as children and are walking the streets with the Lord (in fact many lords).
ellauri156.html on line 62: When my Grandmother Palmer was alive, she lived on a farm outside of Shelton, Washington. At the entrance to her driveway was a small lot, where a small mobile home was parked. As I recall, the woman who lived in the trailer and her husband were estranged. The husband, who had served time in prison, was prone to violence. When the husband came to the mobile home to see his wife, another man was there. An argument resulted, and blows were exchanged. Ultimately, the woman's visitor brandished a weapon and demanded that the husband leave. He left, but only while uttering threats about what he was yet to do.
ellauri156.html on line 64: A few hours later, my uncle came by to visit my grandmother. He was just entering the driveway, very near the little mobile home where the altercation occurred earlier. Unfortunately, my uncle was driving a car which looked similar to the one driven by the estranged husband's adversary parked outside the trailer earlier in the day. Gunshots rang out as the enraged husband fulfilled his vow. The rifle easily penetrated the windshield, and my uncle was instantly killed -- by mistake. The angry husband had killed my uncle, falsely assuming that he was his adversary.
ellauri156.html on line 76: Israel is at war with none other than the Ammonites (verse 1), which may come as a surprise to you as it did to me. (Well, to be honest, I thought they were the cretacean mollusks by the same name.) I thought the Ammonites had been defeated in chapter 10. I was wrong. The author is very clear on this matter. In chapter 8, the author tells how David began to engage his enemies in battle, ending the strangle-hold these surrounding nations had on Israel. David subjected the Philistines (8:1), then the Moabites (8:2), and then he took on the king of Zobah (8:3ff.). In the process, other nations became involved and found Israel too formidable an enemy to oppose again. (Notice the similarity of the situation here to the Yom Kippur War.)
ellauri156.html on line 78: In chapter 10, we find David and the men of Israel deliberately insulted by Hanun, the king of the Ammonites. David had become friends with Nahash, the former king. When he died, David sent a delegation of officials to express David's respect for Nahash and his grief over this king's death. The Ammonites do not seem to wish to continue this peaceful relationship with David and Israel, so they humiliate the men whom David sent. This is how it all happened (Bob omitted this):
ellauri156.html on line 88: The author of our text informs us that it is spring, the time when kings go to war (11:1). Weather has always affected warfare. Battles have been won and lost due to the season. Winter time is not favorable to war. Napoleon found this out in Moscow, The Germans in Stalingrad, and the Russians in the Finnish Winter War.) It is cold and wet, and camping out in the open field (as those who are besieging the city of Rabbah have to do -- see 11:11) hardly is feasible. The wheels of chariots get stuck in the mud, among other problems. And so kings usually sit it out for the winter, resuming their warfare in the spring. It is spring, Israel is still at war with the Ammonites, and it is time to finish the task of subduing them. The army assembles, under the command of Joab and his officers, and “all Israel.” They all go off to complete their victory over the Ammonites, who seem to retreat in their capital and fortress city of Rabbah.
ellauri156.html on line 106: But why the fuck was it a sin in the first place? Censuses are taxation events. David was after money, not blood, since when is that a sin in Jehovah's book? Or maybe he did not want to draw the sword, but rather sheathe it with Bathsheba? Now that is a sin, if the vagina is not one of yours. Hey, read on, Bob explains it all:
ellauri156.html on line 133: 1950-luvulla Onni Gideonin yhtye säesti levyillä muun muassa Olavi Virtaa ja Annikki Tähteä. ”Kuningaskobra”, alun perin Teddy Powellin sävellys ”Snake Charmer”, levytettiin Onni Gideonin yhtyeen kanssa.
ellauri156.html on line 142: According to Beatles historian Kenneth Womack, McCartney drew his inspiration for the song from Robert Service’s poem “The Shooting of Dan McGrew.” The Old West-style honky-tonk piano was played by producer George Martin. "Rocky Raccoon" is also the last Beatles song to feature John Lennon's harmonica playing.
ellauri156.html on line 143: In Mojo magazine in October 2008, McCartney acknowledged that the style of the song is a pastiche, saying: "I was basically spoofing the folksinger." Lennon attributed the song to McCartney, saying: "Couldn't you guess? Would I have gone to all that trouble about Gideon's Bible and all that stuff?"
ellauri156.html on line 236: King David makes the mistake of staying in Jerusalem, rather than fighting the Ammonites with his army. He does not stay home to meditate on the Law of Moses or to write another psalm or two; he seems to stay home to stay in bed. We know Uriah went to bed when it was evening (that is, when it got dark), and it is very likely that he got up at first light (see 11:13). With David, it is very different. David does not get up until evening, that is, until it is time for a soldier to go to bed. (As a friend of mine pointed out, this is probably a habit developed over days and not just a one-time event.) It is very unlikely that David is doing any “kingly work” in the wee hours of the night. From all appearances, David is simply indulging himself. Whaddya mean? Fucking maidens is kingly work if anything. Surely he wasn't watching late night shows, since all he had was his TV mama. Sitting up and adjusting the screen until the picture was completely right.
ellauri156.html on line 269: I am not suggesting that David purposed to see something he should not. (I bet he did, peeping Tom. You actually come round to the same conclusion below, Bob.) More than likely he is walking about, almost absent-mindedly, when suddenly his eyes fix on something that rivets his attention on a woman bathing herself. The text does not really tell us where this woman is bathing, and why at this time of the night? We only know that she is within sight of David's penthouse (rooftop). David notes her beauty. He does not know who she is or whether she is married. We cannot be certain how much David sees, and thus we do not know for certain whether he has yet sinned. (What the fuck? How much do you need to see to sin? Are boobs enough, or do you need to see the pudendum or the fanny?) If David saw more of this woman than he should (a fact still in question), then he surely should have diverted his eyes. It was not necessarily evil for him to discretely inquire about her. If she were unmarried and eligible, he could have taken her for his wife. His inquiry would make this clear.
ellauri156.html on line 289: My fear is that David chose to ignore Uriah's military record and to fix his attention upon his racial origins. It is obvious and noteworthy that David refers to Uriah as “Uriah the Hittite,” while the author of Samuel refers to him only as “Uriah.” The expression, “Uriah the Hittite” is a term of derision, I believe, based solely upon the fact that he is of Hittite stock. Never mind that David has Moabite blood in his veins.
ellauri156.html on line 293: Let us briefly review the place of the Hittites in Old Testament history. As early as Genesis 15:18-21, God promised Abram (Abraham) that his descendants would inherit the land of the Hittites (along with that of other peoples as well; see also Exodus 3:8, 17; 13:5; 23:23, 28, 32; 33:21; 34:11; Deuteronomy 7:1; Joshua 1:4; 3:10). Ephron, the man from whom Abraham bought a burial plot for his family, was a Hittite (see Genesis 23:10; 25:9; etc.). Jacob's brother Esau married several Hittite wives (Genesis 26:34-35; 36:2). The Israelites were commanded to utterly destroy the Hittites (Deuteronomy 20:17). The Hittites opposed Israel's entrance into the promised land (see Numbers 13:29; Joshua 9:1: 11;1-5), and the Israelites had some victories over them (Joshua 24;11). Nevertheless, they did not totally remove them and came to live among them (Judges 3:5). When David was fleeing from Saul, he learned that the king was camped nearby. He asked two of his men who would go with him to Saul's camp. One of the two, Abishai, volunteered to go with David, the other man did not. This man was Ahimelech, the Hittite (1 Samuel 26:6). (Eli siis mitä? Pitäskö tästä päätellä nyt jotakin heettien statuxesta vai? Oliko ne jotain neekereitä?)
ellauri156.html on line 295: It is obvious that Uriah had forsaken his own people and their gods to live in Israel, marry an Israelite woman, and fight in David's army. He is no pagan, to be put to death. He is a proselyte. In spite of all this, I believe David looks down upon him. David has grown accustomed to having the finest of everything. His palace is the finest around. His furnishings, his food, his help, are all the finest. Now, he looks from his penthouse and sees a woman whom he regards as “fine.” How can a woman so “fine” belong to this Hittite? She is fit for a king. And this king intends to have her.
ellauri156.html on line 299: The sequence of events, so far as David is concerned, can be enumerated in this way: (1) David stays in Jerusalem; (2) David stays in bed; (3) David sees Bathsheba bathing herself as he walks on his roof; (4) David sends and inquires about this woman; (5) David learns her identity and that she is married to a military hero; (6) David sends messengers to take her and bring her to him; (7) David lays with her; (8) Bathsheba goes back to her home after she purifies herself. This same sequence can be seen in a number of other texts, none of which is commendable. Shechem “saw, took, and lay with” Dinah, the daughter of Jacob in Genesis 34:2. Judah “saw, took, and went in to” the Canaanite woman he made his wife in Genesis 38:2-3. Achan “saw, coveted, and took” the forbidden spoils of war in Joshua 7:21. Samson did virtually the same in Judges 14. Let us not forget that a similar sequence occurred at the first sin when Eve “saw, desired, and took” the forbidden fruit in Genesis 3. (Thanx a lot Bob for this compendium. This will certainly come handy later on, when looking for something fun to read.)
ellauri156.html on line 301: It is clear from the words of our text that David sinned. It is clear from the actions of David which follow that he sinned. It is clear from the words of God through Nathan that David sinned in a grievous manner. The problem is that many wish to view the text in a way that forces Bathsheba to share David's guilt by assuming that she somehow seduced him. I would like to pursue this matter, because I believe there is absolutely no evidence to support such a conclusion. (Wow! That's a refreshing point of view! Like Ballsack's novel Comment la belle Fille de Portillon quinaulda son iuge.)
ellauri156.html on line 307: When we read of this incident, we do so through Western eyes. We live in a day when a woman has the legal right to say “No” at any point in a romantic relationship. If the man refuses to stop, that is regarded as a violation of her rights; it is regarded as rape. It didn't work that way for women in the ancient Near East. Lot could offer his virgin daughters to the wicked men of Sodom, to protect strangers who were his guests, and there was not one word of protest from his daughters when he did so (Genesis 19:7-8). Even less later, when they asked their father Lot to fuck them at will. These virgins were expected to obey their father, who was in authority over them. Michal was first given to David as his wife, and then Saul took her back and gave her to another man. And then David took her back (1 Samuel 25:44; 2 Samuel 3:13-16). Apparently Michal had no say in this whole sequence of events. Oh, those days of innocence!
ellauri156.html on line 311: Now, having looked at the big picture, let's concentrate on the juicy details. The text informs us that David sees this woman bathing and notes that she is very beautiful. It is sometimes thought that David saw Bathsheba unclothed as she bathed herself publicly, and that the sight of her (unclothed/partially) body prompted David to act as he did. Virtually the identical words employed in our text (“very beautiful in appearance”) are found in Genesis 24:16 of Rebekah, as she came to the well with a water jug on her shoulder. She was neither naked nor partially clothed. Similar (though not identical) descriptions are found, where no exposure of the woman is indicated at all (see Genesis 12:11; 26:7; 29:17; Esther 1:1). I believe one of the reasons David summons Bathsheba to his palace is that he has not seen all that he wishes. (Haahaa! Bob, you are a little too bashful here. Most likely he wants to try on what he saw, like St. Thomas who wanted to put his finger in the wound. Seeing is not believing.)
ellauri156.html on line 313: Let's pursue this matter a little more. (Oh lord, I feel the spirit stirring below my belt.) Bathsheba is bathing herself. (This is about the 4. time Bob invites us to picture this tender moment. There are not too many of them in the Bible, so let us savor it.) We tend to assume that this means she is disrobed, at least partially. I believe Bathsheba is bathing herself in some place normally used for such purposes. Only David, with his penthouse vantage, would be able to see her, and a whole lot of other folks if he chose. The poor do not have the same privacy privileges as the rich. I have seen any number of people bathing themselves on the sidewalks of India, because this is their home. The word for bathing employed here is often used to describe the washing of a guest's hands or feet and for the ceremonial washings of the priests. Abigail used this term when she spoke of washing the feet of David's servants (1 Samuel 25:41). Such washings could be done, with decency, without total privacy. We assume far too much if we assume Abigail is walking about unclothed, in full sight of onlookers.
ellauri156.html on line 325: First, the root of David's sin is not low self-esteem; it is arrogance. (Since when is low self-esteem a sin? Well I bet it is for American believers. Think of Bill James' Will to Believe.) I am getting quite weary of hearing that the root of all evils is low self-esteem. I wonder why we see nothing of this in the Bible. David's problem is just the opposite. He has become puffed up and arrogant because of his success and status as Israel's king. He has come to see himself as different/better than the rest of the Israelites. They need to go to war; he does not. They need to sleep in the open field; he needs to get his rest in his own bed, in his palace. They can have a wife; he can have whatever woman he wants.
ellauri156.html on line 331: I must press the point a little further, at the risk of coming off. Of course it is wrong for David to use his power to have sex with another man's wife. But it is not right to abuse power even when sex is permissible. A husband should not abuse his power in order to have sex with his wife. And a wife should not abuse her power (of saying “No,” for example) to punish or put off her husband. (LOL! Bob, you show you true colors here!) Within marriage, sex is simply another area of serving our mate. It is not the opportunity to lord it over our mate. Put that in your pipe and smoke it, Jennifer! And you girls as well!
ellauri156.html on line 388: The story of David and Uriah reminds me of the story of the “Sorcerer's Apprentice.” It has been awhile, but as I remember the plot (probably the Walt Disney version), the sorcerer goes away, leaving his apprentice behind to do his chores. The apprentice gets the bright idea that the work would be a whole lot easier if he used his master's magical arts so he could sit back and watch other powers at work. The problem was that he didn't know how to stop what he started, and so more and more helpers came on the scene as the apprentice tried to reverse the process. The worst was when Mickey tried to cleave the broom with an axe, and got instead a million of smaller brooms.
ellauri156.html on line 390: At this point in time, David's life is very similar. He begins to stack one sin upon another, certain that each one will somehow wipe out visibility of the previous sin. Instead, his sins only multiply. More and more people become aware of his sin, and a cover up becomes impossible. Many lessons can be learned from this tragic episode of David's life, which if heeded, will help us duplicate them in our lives. May the Spirit of God open our ears and our hearts to listen and learn from David's attempt to cover up his sin with Bathsheba, so that you can avoid some of his mistakes and do a better job.
ellauri156.html on line 392: In our first lesson, we devoted our attention to the first four verses of chapter 11, which depict David's sin of adultery with Bathsheba. Pretty unbelievable that I got a whole four pages out of it. The trick is was to keep repeating the juicy bit about Bathsheba washing herself before (or after) David's load. I sought to demonstrate that this sin was all of David's doing. The author points his accusing finger at David, not Bathsheba. It was not Bathsheba's indiscretion in bathing herself (as I understand this story), for she was simply obeying the ritual of purification outlined in the law. It was David who, by means of his lofty elevation and view, looked inappropriately at Bathsheba, washing herself,violating her privacy. I endeavored to demonstrate that David's sin with Bathsheba was the result of a sequence of wrong decisions and attitudes on David's part. In one sense, being on the path he was, his destination (of adultery, or something like it) was to be expected. His sins of omission finally blossomed and came into full bloom.
ellauri156.html on line 402: It looks as though Bathsheba never enters David's mind after their encounter described in verses 1-4. It certainly does not seem that David wants to continue the relationship, to carry on an affair, or to marry her. David simply puts this sinful event out of his mind, until a messenger is sent by Bathsheba informing the king that his night of passion has produced a child. Bathsheba informs David that she is pregnant, not that she is afraid she might be. This means that she has missed at least one period and probably another. All in all, several weeks or more have passed. It will not be long before her pregnancy will become obvious to anyone who looks at her. This is David's sin and his responsibility, and so she informs him.
ellauri156.html on line 404: David has two plans, Plan A, and failing that, Plan B. Here he is very like his master, the Dog, who also has very analogous two plans for his proteges: Plan A, take them to his fold if they obey him, and Plan B: throw them to the dogs (the bad hounds of the hell) if they don't.
ellauri156.html on line 412: I should also add that Joab is already being drawn into the conspiracy. Joab obeys David's command to send Uriah, and my guess is that Joab knows something is up. He may even have heard about David's liaison with Bathsheba. When he sends Uriah to Jerusalem, he has to give him some mission, some task to perform. Joab and Uriah may have sensed that this was no “mission impossible” (as you would give a mighty warrior), but that is a “mission incredible.” In any case, the web of deceit and deception is already being woven, and more people are being drawn into the conspiracy. Wow, this is prime material for a soap opera. Maybe there already is one, must check. OF COURSE there is:
ellauri156.html on line 439: So are all the fireworks on the Fourth of July the fulfillment of the prophecy that 17 Tammuz will become a day of "joy and gladness"? Probably not, partly because it is to be a day of rejoicing for the Jews and partly because it is not celebrated annually on 17 Tammuz. But that prophecy may have begun to be fulfilled at the Nauvoo Temple dedication on 17 Tammuz.
ellauri156.html on line 447: The musical score was by Alfred Newman (the funny looking kid on the cover of Mad magazine), who, for the bucolic scene with the shepherd boy, used a solo oboe in the Lydian mode, drawing on long established conventions linking the solo oboe with pastoral scenes and the shepherd's pipe. To underscore David's guilt-ridden turmoil in the Mount Gilboa scene, Newman resorted to a vibraphone, which Miklós Rózsa used in scoring Peck's popular 1945 Spellbound, in which he played a no less disturbed patient suffering from amnesia, viz. prophet Nathan Zuckerman.
ellauri156.html on line 487: With all due respect, Uriah declines -- indeed Uriah refuses -- to do that which would be conduct unbefitting a soldier, let alone a war hero. I think it is important to see that there is no specific command here which Uriah refuses to disobey. To my knowledge, there is no specific law in the Law of Moses which commands a soldier to have sex with women during times of war. (This may have been true in the earlier days of Israel's history, there would not have been another generation of Israelites otherwise, since Israel was almost constantly at war with one of their neighbors.) This is the conviction of Uriah as a soldier, and he will not violate his conscience by deceiving his fellow men in tights, even when commanded to do so by the king.
ellauri156.html on line 491: 1 Then David came to Nob to Ahimelech the priest; and Ahimelech came trembling to meet David and said to him, “Why are you alone and no one with you?” 2 David said to Ahimelech the priest, “The king has commissioned me with a matter and has said to me, 'Let no one know anything about the matter on which I am sending you and with which I have commissioned you; and I have directed the young men to a certain place.' 3 “Now therefore, what do you have on hand? Give me five loaves of bread, or whatever can be found.” 4 The priest answered David and said, “There is no ordinary bread on hand, but there is consecrated bread; if only the young men have kept themselves from women.” 5 David answered the priest and said to him, “Surely women have been kept from us as previously when I set out and the vessels of the young men were holy, though it was an ordinary journey; how much more then today will their vessels be holy?” (1 Samuel 21:1-5). Pyhiä vesseleitä. Tarkoittaako se siemenjohtimia? Ilmeisesti, suomexi se on: palvelijoiden reput ovat olleet pyhät. Reppureissulaisia pyhäkouluretkellä pussit tyhjinä. Kassit jätetään ulkopuolelle.
ellauri156.html on line 495: Now here is a most amazing thing. David, years earlier, was adamant about the fact that those on a mission for the king should keep themselves from sexual intercourse. Now, years later, David is amazed that a man on a mission for the king is willing to abstain from sexual intercourse with his wife. Worse yet, David sets out to convince -- even to compel -- Uriah to go to do so, even though it will cause him to violate his conscience. This is not “causing a weaker brother to stumble;” this is cutting off a stronger brother's "leg" at the knob. Uriah is an example of the commitment expected of every soldier, and of David in particular -- at least the David of the past. Uriah is now acting like the David we knew from earlier days. Uriah is the “David” that David should be. But there is a crucial difference: now David is the king. This makes the case completely different.
ellauri156.html on line 499: Plan C: Get Uriah to Do Drunk What He Will Not Do Sober (11:12-13)
ellauri156.html on line 501: David is getting desperate. David has not even entertained the possibility that Uriah will refuse his offer. Uriah speaks with such conviction, David knows that he will never violate his duty as a soldier with all of his mental faculties. David lands upon one last modification to his original plan -- get Uriah drunk and then into bed with his wife. After all, don't people do things when they are drunk that they will not do when sober? This will surely bring about David's intended outcome.
ellauri156.html on line 509: It must be an agonizing night for David, seeing that even drunk Uriah is a better man than he. But not a better pecker! And so in the morning, David acts. He writes a letter to Joab, which will serve as Uriah's death warrant. In this letter David clearly orders Joab to murder Uriah for him. He even tells him how to do so in a way that might conceal the truth of the matter. In so doing, David can honor Uriah as a war hero, and magnanimously take on the duty of being a husband to Uriah's wife, also taking care of the child she is soon to bear. Joab is to put Uriah on the front lines of battle, at the fiercest place of battle, no surprise for a man of his military skills and courage. Joab is to attack and then retreat in such a way as to make Uriah an easy target for the Ammonites, thus assuring his death. There is no mistaking David's orders to Uriah: he wants Uriah killed in a way which makes it look like a simple casualty of war. Joab complies completely with David's orders (why? Is Uriah a creep?), and Uriah is eliminated, no longer an obstacle to David's plans. In giving this order to Joab, David makes him a part of this conspiracy, making him share the guilt for the spilled blood of Uriah. David's sin continues to encompass more and more people, leading to greater and greater sin.
ellauri156.html on line 522: However, according to Josephus, in Antiquities, Book 7, Chapter 1, Joab had forgiven Abner for the death of his brother, Asahel, the reason being that Abner had slain Asahel honorably in combat after he had first warned Asahel and tried to knock the wind out of him with the butt of his "spear". However, probably by intervention of God, his obtuse tool went through Asahel. The Bible says everyone stopped and gawked. That shows that something like this never happened before. This battle was part of a civil war between David and Ish-bosheth, the son of Saul. After this battle Abner switched to the side of David and granted him control over the tribe of Benjamin. This act put Abner in David's favor.
ellauri156.html on line 539: His One Sin: The rabbis agree that Abner deserved this violent death, though opinions differ concerning the exact nature of the sin that entailed so dire a punishment on one who was, on the whole, considered a "righteous man" (Gen. R. lxxxii. 4). Some reproach him that he did not use his influence with Saul to prevent him from murdering the priests of Nob (Yer. Peah, i. 16a; Lev. R. xxvi. 2; Sanh. 20a)—convinced as he was of the innocence of the priests and of the propriety of their conduct toward David, Abner holding that as leader of the army David was privileged to avail himself of the Urine and Thumbeline (I Sam. xxii. 9-19). Instead of contenting himself with passive resistance to Saul's command to murder the priests (Yalḳ., Sam. 131), Abner ought to have tried to restrain the king by the balls. Others maintain that Abner did make such an attempt, but in vain (Saul had not enough to get a proper hold of), and that his one sin consisted in that he delayed the beginning of David's reign over Israel by fighting him after Saul's death for two years and a half (Sanh. l.c.). Others, again, while excusing him for this—in view of a tradition founded on Gen. xlix. 27, according to which there were to be two kings of the house of Benjamin—blame Abner for having prevented a reconciliation between Saul and David on the occasion when the latter, in holding on to the skirt of Saul's robe (I Sam. xxiv. 11), showed how unfounded was the king's mistrust of him, seeing Saul had no balls to speak of. Old Saul was inclined to be happy with a pacifier; but Abner, representing to him that the naked David might have found a piece of garment anywhere — even just a piece of sackcloth caught on a thorn — prevented the reconciliation (Yer. Peah, l.c., Lev. R. l.c., and elsewhere). Moreover, it was wrong of Abner to permit Israelitish youths to kill one another for sport (II Sam. ii. 14-16). No reproach, however, attaches to him for the death of Asahel, since Abner killed him in self-defense (Sanh. 49a).
ellauri156.html on line 548: Joab Handles a P.R. Problem (11:18-25)
ellauri156.html on line 556: The answer is quite simple, as is evident by Joab's own concerns. The entire mission is a fiasco. The Israelites have besieged the city of Rabbah. This means they surround the city, giving the people no way in or out of the city. All the Israelites have to do is wait them out and starve them out. There is no need for any attack. The mission is a suicide mission from the outset, and it does not take a genius to see it for what it is. Joab has to assemble a group of mighty men, like Uriah, and including Uriah, to wage an attack on the city. This attack is not at the enemy's weakest point, as we would expect, but at the strongest point. This attack provokes a counter-attack by the Ammonites against Uriah and those with him. When the Israelite army draws back from their own men, they leave them defenseless, and the obvious result is a slaughter. How can one possibly report this fiasco in a way that doesn’t make Joab look like a fool (at best), or a murderer (at worst)?
ellauri156.html on line 562: Now why does this messenger not wait for David to respond in anger, as Joab instructed? Why does he inform David that Uriah has been killed, before he even utters a word of criticism or protest? I believe the messenger gives the report in this way because he understands what is really going on here. I think he may know about David and Bathsheba, and perhaps even of her pregnancy. He certainly knows that Uriah was summoned to Jerusalem. I think he also figures out that David wants to get rid of Uriah, and that Joab has accomplished this by this miserable excuse for an offensive against the enemy. I think the messenger figures out that if David knows Uriah has been killed, he will not raise any objections to this needless slaughter. And so, rather than wait for David to hypocritically rant and rave about the stupidity of such a move, he just goes on and tells him first, so that he will not receive any reaction from David.
ellauri156.html on line 574: Second, “How far can a Christian fall?” This far [Bob points down there with his fingers]. David not only commits the sin of adultery, he commits murder. I think it is safe to say that there is no sin of which the Christian is not capable in the flesh. I have heard people say, “I don't know how a person who _______ could have ever been a Christian.” There are times -- like this time for David -- when it is obvious that we will hardly be saved by the testimony of our actions. Christians come from just the same gene pool of motherfuckers as the rest of us.
ellauri156.html on line 576: Third, “How fast can a Christian fall?” This fast [Bob flaps his hands]. It is amazing how quickly David falls into the sins depicted in this one chapter. In a matter of weeks, or months at best. Apart from God's sustaining grace, we can fall very far, very quickly. Let us be reminded of this fact from David's tragic experience.
ellauri156.html on line 590: Seventh, Uriah is a reminder to us that God does not always deliver the righteous from the hand of the wicked immediately, or even in this lifetime. This is a really crucial point! Don't except to be saved except ex post facto. Daniel's three friends told the king that their God was able to deliver them. They did not presume that He would, or that He must, only that theoretically, he could if he wanted to. And God did deliver them, though with late delivery, rather like today's postal services. I think Christians should look upon this sort of deliverance as the rule, rather than the exception. But when Uriah faithfully serves his king (David), he loses his life. God is not obliged to “bail us out of trouble” or to keep us from trials and tribulations just because we trust in Him. Sometimes it is the will of God for men to trust fully in Him and to submit to human government (what? like U.S. government? No way Jose!), and still to suffer adversity, from which God may not deliver us. Spirituality is no guarantee that we will no longer suffer in this life. In fact, spiritual intimacy with God is often the cause of our sufferings (see Matthew 5).
ellauri156.html on line 613: 13 All these died in faith, without receiving the promises, but having seen them and having welcomed them from a distance, and having confessed that they were strangers and exiles on the earth. 14 For those who say such things make it clear that they are seeking a country of their own. 15 And indeed if they had been thinking of that country from which they went out, they would have had opportunity to return. 16 But as it is, they desire a better country, that is, a heavenly one. Therefore God is not ashamed to be called their God; for He has prepared a city for them. 32 And what more shall I say? For time will fail me if I tell of Gideon, Barak, Samson, Jephthah, of David and Samuel and the prophets, 33 who by faith conquered kingdoms, performed acts of righteousness, obtained promises, shut the mouths of lions, 34 quenched the power of fire, escaped the edge of the sword, from weakness were made strong, became mighty in war, put foreign armies to flight. 35 Women received back their dead by resurrection; and others were tortured, not accepting their release, so that they might obtain a better resurrection; 36 and others experienced mockings and scourgings, yes, also chains and imprisonment. 37 They were stoned, they were sawn in two, they were tempted, they were put to death with the sword; they went about in sheepskins, in goatskins, in foreskins, being destitute, afflicted, ill-treated 38 (men of whom the world was not worthy), wandering in deserts and mountains and caves and holes in the ground. 39 And all these, having gained approval through their faith, did not receive what was promised, 40 because God had provided something even better for us, to make up for the wait, so that apart from us they would not be made perfect (Hebrews 11:13-16, 32-40).
ellauri156.html on line 615: Uriah should not be criticized or looked down upon for his loyalty and submission to David. He should be highly commended. In fact, a friend suggested a new thought for my consideration: “Suppose that Uriah was added to the list of war heroes because of his loyalty and courage in this battle which cost him his life? It is a possibility to consider. Uriah is one of those Gentile converts whose faith and obedience puts many Israelites to shame. He is among many of those who have trusted and obeyed God who have not received their just rewards in this life, but who will be rewarded in the coming kingdom of God. Too many Christians today want their blessings “now” and are not willing to suffer, waiting for their reward then. Let them think carefully about the example of Uriah for their own lives. His elevator may have not gone all the way to the top floor, but by Gawd, he will reach it when Jacob lets down the ladder!
ellauri156.html on line 627: In addition to the hundreds of sheep in a nearby pasture, there was a small lamb in a pen, very close to the house. It was a frisky, friendly little fellow, and we loved to "play" with it. We were somewhat perplexed as to why this fellow was kept by himself, away from the rest of the flock. The farmer's nephew came by, and I asked him. It took a while to understand his strong accent, but finally I realized he was telling me this was his “pet lamb.” The problem was that he said it as though it were one word, “bedlam.” This was obviously a separate category, distinct from the category of mere “sheep” or a “lamb.” This “pet lamb” was given a special pen, right by the house, and a lot more attention and care than the rest. I did not dare to ask the man where his "penis".
ellauri156.html on line 637: It all seems to be over. David is not looking for another wife; he is not even looking for an affair. He is looking for a conquest. That should have happened on the battlefield, not in the bedroom! Things take a very different turn when Bathsheba sends word to David that she is pregnant. David first seeks to cover up his sin by ordering Joab to send Uriah home on furlough, ostensibly to give David a report on the war. David's efforts to get Uriah into bed with Bathsheba begin as subtle hints, then change to veiled orders, and then turn crass as David seeks to get Uriah to do drunk what he will not do sober. When these efforts fail (due to Uriah's noble character), David sends Uriah back to Joab, with written orders to Joab to put him to death in a way that makes it seem like a casualty of war. Joab does as he is told and sends word to David: “Mission accomplished.” It is here that our apparently never-ending story resumes.
ellauri156.html on line 683: Fourth, Nathan's story is a “sheep story,” one that a shepherd can easily grasp and with which he can readily identify. David was a shepherd boy in his younger days, as we know from the Book(s) of Samuel (see 1 Samuel 16:11; 17:15, 28). I wonder if in those lonely days and nights David does not make a “petlamb” of one or more of his sheep? You bet. Some comfort for his lonely nights. Did this sheep eat of his food and drink from his cup? Did this sheep give him a blowjob? Possibly so.
ellauri156.html on line 689: As I understand the Bible, there is more to the story than this, however. Our lord (meaning Jeshua) frequently told stories. Why was this? Was it because he was trying to “put the cookies on the lowest shelf”? Was he accommodating his teaching to those who might have difficulty understanding it? Sometimes our lord told stories to the religious experts, who should have been able to follow a more technical argument. No, I think his own elevator did not quite reach the upper floors. I am thinking in particular of the story of the Good Samaritan, as recorded in Luke 10. A religious lawyer stood up and asked Jesus a question, not to sincerely learn, but with the hope of making our Lord look bad before the people. He asked, “What shall I do to inherit eternal life?” Jesus turned the question around. This man was the expert in the Law of Moses, what did it teach? The man answered, “YOU SHALL LOVE THE LORD YOUR GOD WITH ALL YOUR HEART, AND WITH ALL YOUR SOUL, AND WITH ALL YOUR STRENGTH, AND WITH ALL YOUR MIND; AND YOUR NEIGHBOR AS YOURSELF, THAT IS, EVEN MORE.” (Luke 10:27). In effect, Jesus responded, “Right. Now do it.” That was the problem with the law, no one could do it without failing, and so no one could earn their way to heaven by good works. Well, how high can we get with mediocre works? Someplace between heaven and hell would actually be most preferable.
ellauri156.html on line 707: The rich man had a guest drop in for a visit, and as the host he was obliged to provide him with a meal. After giving the matter considerable thought, the rich man decided upon lamb, and yet he was not willing to sacrifice one lamb from all those he owned. Instead, he took the poor man's lamb, slaughtered and served it to his guest, so as not to suffer any losses personally. He not only let (i.e., forced) the poor man to pick up the tab for the meal, he deprived this man of his only lamb, and one that was like a member of the family.
ellauri156.html on line 711: David does not see what is coming. The story Nathan tells makes David furious. The David who was once ready to do in Nabal and all the male members of his household (1 Samuel 25) is now angry enough to do in the villain of Nathan's story. Doing in folks was one of his pet lambs. In some ways, David's response is a bit overdone. He reminds me a bit of Judah in Genesis 38, when he learns that Tamar, his daughter-in-law is pregnant out of wedlock. Not realizing that he is the father of the child in her womb, Judah is ready to have Tamar burned to death. How ironic that those who are guilty of a particular sin are intolerant of this sin in the life of others. Well said, Bob! Christians are really hard on people who have no charity.
ellauri156.html on line 740: Nathan tells David the story of a rich man and a poor man. God tells David through Nathan that all that he possesses (his riches) it is he, the boss, who has given them to him. God is like the rich man, and David the poor one with just the one. David's problem is that his possessions have come to own him. He is so stingy he won't even give his petlamb to Mr. Rich. He is so “possessed” with his lamb that he is unwilling to spend it when his boss has a party. He wants “more” and “more,” and so he begins to take what isn’t his to take, rather than to ask the divine Giver for all he has and more.
ellauri156.html on line 744: First and foremost, David's sin is against God. He has ceased to humbly acknowledge God as the Giver of all he possesses. He has ceased to look to God to provide him with all his needs -- and his desires. David has not only ceased to ask God to supply his needs, he has disobeyed God's commands by committing adultery and murder. David's sin against God manifests itself by the evils he commits against others. Nathan outlines these, employing a repetitive “you:”
ellauri156.html on line 766: The evil David commits against others is clear disobedience to the revealed Word of God. David is a “man after God's own heart,” and yet in this instance, David “despised the Word of the Lord.” While David does repent and the guilt of his sin is forgiven, these consequences will not be reversed. These consequences are just; they fit the crime David committed. He used the sword of the Ammonites to kill Uriah, and so the sword will not depart from his house. He took the wife of another man, and so his own wives will be taken by another, another from his own house.
ellauri156.html on line 778: 20 So Moses said to them, “If you will do this, if you will arm yourselves before the LORD for the war, 21 and all of you armed men cross over the Jordan before the LORD until He has driven His enemies out from before Him, 22 and the land is subdued before the LORD, then afterward you shall return and be free of obligation toward the LORD and toward Israel, and this land shall be yours for a possession before the LORD. 23 “But if you will not do so, behold, you have sinned against the LORD, and be sure your sin will find you out (Numbers 32:20-23, emphasis mine). Note what this says! We must support Israel against its mooslem neighbors! They are not their neighbors! Or rather of course they are but they are also enemies!
ellauri156.html on line 780: (3) God is under no obligation to stop us from sinning. (So why did he bother with David then? Is he some sort of special case? Of course he is, he is Dawgs petlamb. Sometimes people justify their sin by saying something like: “I've prayed about it and asked God to stop me if it is wrong. . . .” When God does not stop them, they somehow assume it must be right. God could have stopped David after he chose to stay home from the war, or after he began to covet Uriah's wife, or after he committed adultery, but instead He allowed David to persist in his sin for some time. God even allowed David to get away with murder, for a time. Well actually, for good. It was just a immigrant after all. God's Word forbade David's sins of coveting, adultery, and murder. God's Word commanded David to stop, and he did not. God allowed David to persist in his sin for a season, but not indefinitely. God allowed David's sin to go full circle, to reach full bloom, so that he (and we) could see how sin grows (compare Genesis 15:12-16).
ellauri156.html on line 800: (5) David's sin, like all sin, is never worth the price. I have actually had people ask me what the penalty for a certain sin would be, planning to do it and then be forgiven. There are those who toy with sin, thinking that if they sin, they may suffer some consequences, but that God is obliged to forgive them, and thus their eternal future is certain and secure, no matter what they do, even if intentionally. I know of one situation in which a church leader left his wife and ran off with the wife of another, planning to later repent, and then expecting to be welcomed back into the fellowship of that church. This is presumptuous sin, sin of the most serious and dangerous kind. Rather than open a “can of worms” at this point in this message, let me simply say this: “No one ever chooses to sin, and then comes out of it with a smile on their face.” My friend Dawg will almost certainly wipe that smug smirk off their face. I still seethe when I think of that colleague of mine, and how he got away with dumping her hag and plucking a dainty dish from Brother ... (better not say). Took just a few months for the brotherhood to relent. Fuck, it shouldn't be that easy! A little more speedy delivery of the retribution would be indicated, don't you think, milord? Not that I criticize you in any way, milord.
ellauri156.html on line 810: Note that this last part is full of Saulus quotes. Whenever evangelists are about to finish they pepper their talk with these Saulus quotes. I guess it is because Saulus' job was so close to their own: first scare the suckers and then sugar the medicine.
ellauri158.html on line 342: P. 2. defin. 4. Per ideam adaequatam intelligo ideam, quae, quatenus in se sine relatione ad obiectum consideratur, omnes verae ideae proprietates sive denominationes intrinsecas habet. [in: P. 4. prop. 62., P. 5. prop. 17.]
ellauri158.html on line 419: Obscurum per obscurius. Emmä ole varma mitä tää tuuba tahtoo sanoa. Eli siis mitä? Voisko tää olla jotain sellasta, että jotkut jutut voi näyttää sattumilta, jos ei tarkata oikeaa syy-seurausketjua. Voi näyttää sattumalta että Alf tippuu kaivantoon ("Just my luck"), muttei se ole sattumaa esim kaivajien kannalta, niillä oli ihan järkevä työtehtävä. Oma vika jos Alf ei kazo eteensä.
ellauri158.html on line 422: -- P. 2. prop. 7. coroll. Hinc sequitur, quod Dei cogitandi potentia aequalis est ipsius actuali agendi potentiae; hoc est, quicquid ex infinita Dei natura sequitur formaliter, id omne ex Dei idea eodem ordine eademque connexione sequitur in Deo obiective. [in: P. 2. prop. 32., prop. 36., prop. 38., prop. 39., P. 3. prop. 28., P. 5. prop. 1.]
ellauri158.html on line 427: Tästä Spinozan tyylistähän sekin ponnisti. Spinozaakin puhutti Parmenideen ongelma, jota mun on aina vaikea edes nähdä ongelmaxi. Sehän se Wittgensteiniakin kiusasi: jos lauseet on jotain todellisuuden heijastuxia, miten niitä voi olla vääriä? Mistä tietää mitä ne tarkoittaa kun ne ovat vääriä? Ei se ole mikään ongelma täällä kuun alisessa maailmassa, jossa lauseet on vaan apinoiden ym elukoiden kuvitelmia, ne tähtää johonkin mutta tekee huteja. Tuleehan roboteillekin bittikarttavirheitä. Mixen pitäis olla ongelma jollekulle typerälle filosoofille? Niillä on jotenkin vääristynyt maailmankuva. Varmaan taas
ellauri158.html on line 433: -- P. 2. prop. 8. coroll. Hinc sequitur, quod, quamdiu res singulares non existunt, nisi quatenus in Dei attributis comprehenduntur, earum esse obiectivum sive ideae non existunt, nisi quatenus infinita Dei idea existit; et ubi res singulares dicuntur existere, non tantum quatenus in Dei attributis comprehenduntur, sed quatenus etiam durare dicuntur, earum ideae etiam existentiam, per quam durare dicuntur, involvent. [in: P. 2. prop. 9., prop. 11., prop. 15., prop. 45., P. 3. prop. 11. schol., P. 5. prop. 21., prop. 23.]
ellauri158.html on line 439: -- P. 2. prop. 9. coroll. Quicquid in singulari cuiuscumque ideae obiecto contingit, eius datur in Deo cognitio, quatenus tantum eiusdem obiecti ideam habet. [in: P. 2. prop. 12., prop. 13., prop. 30., P. 3. prop. 10.]
ellauri158.html on line 456: P. 2. prop. 12. Quicquid in obiecto ideae humanam mentem constituentis contingit, id ab humana mente debet percipi, sive eius rei dabitur in mente necessario idea: hoc est, si obiectum ideae humanam mentem constituentis sit corpus, nihil in eo corpore poterit contingere, quod a mente non percipiatur. [in: P. 2. prop. 13., prop. 14., prop. 17., prop. 17. coroll., prop. 19., prop. 21., prop. 22., prop. 38., P. 3. prop. 2. schol., P. 4. prop. 7., P. 5. prop. 4.]
ellauri158.html on line 495: It is unclear whether Newton read any of Spinoza´s works. However, two people with whom he was in close contact made substantial efforts to repudiate Spinozism directly: Henry More in The Confutation of Spinoza (More 1991) and Samuel Clarke in A Demonstration of the Being and Attributes of God: More Particularly in Answer to Mr. Hobbs, Spinoza and Their Followers. Sit oli vielä "Ralph" Cudworth ja joku "Colin" McLaughlin, kaikki Cambridgen platonisteja, siis jotain täys idiootteja, presumably, ja kaiken lisäxi varmaan vielä homoja. In the arguments on which I focus, More, Clarke, and Maclaurin aim to establish the existence of an immaterial and intelligent God precisely by showing that Spinoza does not have the resources to adequately explain the origin of motion. Sen jumala ei ollut kunnon priimuskaasulla toimiva käynnistysmoottori, pikemminkin joku auton alusta.
ellauri158.html on line 587: P. 2. prop. 18. Si corpus humanum a duobus, vel pluribus corporibus simul affectum fuerit semel, ubi mens postea eorum aliquod imaginabitur, statim et aliorum recordabitur. [in: P. 2. prop. 40. schol. 1., prop. 44. schol., P. 3. prop. 11. schol., prop. 14., prop. 52., P. 4. prop. 13., P. 5. prop. 1., prop. 10. schol., prop. 12., prop. 13.]
ellauri158.html on line 676: P. 2. prop. 34. Omnis idea, quae in nobis est absoluta sive adaequata et perfecta, vera est. [in: P. 2. prop. 41., prop. 43.]
ellauri158.html on line 688: All such opinions spring from the notion commonly entertained, that all things in nature act as men themselves act, namely, with an end in view. It is accepted as certain, that God himself directs all things to a definite goal (for it is said that God made all things for man, and man that he might worship him). I will, therefore, consider this opinion, asking first, why it obtains general credence, and why all men are naturally so prone to adopt it? secondly, I will point out its falsity; and, lastly, I will show how it has given rise to prejudices about good and bad, right and wrong, praise and blame, order and confusion, beauty and ugliness, and the like.
ellauri158.html on line 692: All men are born ignorant of the causes of things, that all have the desire to seek for what is useful to them, and that they are conscious of such desire. Herefrom it follows, first, that men think themselves free inasmuch as they are conscious of their volitions and desires, and never even dream, in their ignorance, of the causes which have disposed them so to wish and desire. Secondly, that men do all things for an end, namely, for that which is useful to them, and which they seek. Thus it comes to pass that they only look for a knowledge of the final causes of events, and when these are learned, they are content, as having no cause for further doubt. If they cannot learn such causes from external sources, they are compelled to turn to considering themselves, and reflecting what end would have induced them personally to bring about the given event, and thus they necessarily judge other natures by their own. Further, as they find in themselves and outside themselves many means which assist them not a little in the search for what is useful, for instance, eyes for seeing, teeth for chewing, herbs and animals for yielding food, the sun for giving light, the sea for breeding fish, &c., they come to look on the whole of nature as a means for obtaining such conveniences. Now as they are aware, that they found these conveniences and did not make them, they think they have cause for believing, that some other being has made them for their use. As they look upon things as means, they cannot believe them to be self—created; but, judging from the means which they are accustomed to prepare for themselves, they are bound to believe in some ruler or rulers of the universe endowed with human freedom, who have arranged and adapted everything for human use. They are bound to estimate the nature of such rulers (having no information on the subject) in accordance with their own nature, and therefore they assert that the gods ordained everything for the use of man, in order to bind man to themselves and obtain from him the highest honor.
ellauri158.html on line 752: -- P. 2. prop. 49. schol. De adversariorum obiectionibus. Quid haec doctrina a usum vitae conferat. [in: P. 3. aff. defin. 14., aff. defin. 15., etiam in: TP cap. 2. art. 1.]
ellauri158.html on line 761: P. 3. defin. 2. Nos tum agere dico, cum aliquid in nobis aut extra nos fit, cuius adaequata sumus causa, hoc est cum ex nostra natura aliquid in nobis, aut extra nos sequitur, quod per eandem solam potest clare et distincte intelligi. At contra nos pati dico, cum in nobis aliquid fit vel ex nostra natura aliquid sequitur, cuius nos non nisi partialis sumus causa. [in: P. 3. prop. 1., P. 4. prop. 2., prop. 5., prop. 15., prop. 23., prop. 33., prop. 35., prop. 35. coroll. 1., prop. 52., prop. 59., prop. 61., prop. 64.]
ellauri158.html on line 765: P. 3. postul. 2. Corpus humanum multas pati potest mutationes, et nihilominus retinere obiectorum impressiones seu vestigia et consequenter easdem rerum imagines.
ellauri158.html on line 768: -- P. 3. prop. 1. coroll. Hinc sequitur mentem eo pluribus passionibus esse obnoxiam quo plures ideas inadaequatas habet et contra eo plura agere quo plures habet adaequatas.
ellauri158.html on line 787: P. 3. prop. 14. Si mens duobus affectibus simul affecta semel fuit, ubi postea eorum alterutro afficietur, afficietur etiam altero. [in: P. 3. prop. 15., prop. 15. coroll., prop. 16.]
ellauri158.html on line 791: P. 3. prop. 16. Ex eo solo, quod rem aliquam aliquid habere imaginamur simile obiecto, quod mentem laetitia vel tristitia afficere solet, quamvis id, in quo res obiecto est similis, non sit horum affectuum efficiens causa, eam tamen amabimus vel odio habebimus. [in: P. 3. prop. 15. schol., prop. 17., prop. 41., prop. 46., P. 4. prop. 34.]
ellauri158.html on line 806: P. 3. prop. 25. Id omne de nobis deque re amata affirmare conamur, quod nos vel rem amatam laetitia afficere imaginamur; et contra id omne negare, quod nos vel rem amatam tristitia afficere imaginamur. [in: P. 3. prop. 26., prop. 30. schol., prop. 40. schol., prop. 41. schol., prop. 50. schol., P. 4. prop. 49.]
ellauri158.html on line 810: P. 3. prop. 27. Ex eo, quod rem nobis similem et quam nullo affectu prosecuti sumus, aliquo affectu affici imaginamur, eo ipso simili affectu afficimur. [in: P. 3. prop. 22. schol., prop. 23. schol., prop. 27. coroll. 1., prop. 27. coroll. 3., prop. 29., prop. 30., prop. 31., prop. 32., prop. 40., prop. 47., prop. 49. schol., prop. 52. schol., prop. 53. coroll., aff. defin. 33., aff. defin. 44., P. 4. prop. 50. schol., prop. 68. schol.]
ellauri158.html on line 812: -- P. 3. prop. 27. coroll. 1. Si aliquem, quem nullo affectu prosecuti sumus, imaginamur laetitia afficere rem nobis similem, amore erga eundem afficiemur. Si contra eundem imaginamur eandem tristitia afficere, odio erga ipsum afficiemur. [in: P. 3. prop. 32., aff. defin. 19., aff. defin. 20.]
ellauri158.html on line 826: P. 3. prop. 33. Cum rem nobis similem amamus, conamur, quantum possumus, efficere, ut nos contra amet. [in: P. 3. prop. 34., prop. 38., prop. 42.]
ellauri158.html on line 860: P. 3. prop. 51. Diversi homines ab uno eodemque obiecto diversimode affici possunt, et unus idemque homo ab uno eodemque obiecto potest diversis temporibus diversimode affici. [in: P. 4. prop. 33.]
ellauri158.html on line 872: P. 3. prop. 56. Laetitiae, tristitiae et cupiditatis, et consequenter uniuscuiusque affectus, qui ex his componitur, ut animi fluctuationis, vel qui ab his derivatur, nempe amoris, odii, spei, metus etc., tot species dantur, quot sunt species obiectorum, a quibus afficimur. [in: P. 4. prop. 33.]
ellauri158.html on line 949: P. 3. aff. defin. 18. Commiseratio est tristitia concomitante idea mali, quod alteri, quem nobis similem esse imaginamur, evenit. [in: P. 4. prop. 50.]
ellauri158.html on line 965: nobis ingeneratur ex eo, quod alios eandem cupiditatem habere imaginamur.
ellauri158.html on line 969: P. 3. aff. defin. 37. Vindicta est cupiditas, qua ex reciproco odio concitamur ad malum inferendum ei, qui nobis pari affectu damnum intulit.
ellauri158.html on line 986: P. 4. defin. 1. Per bonum id intelligam, quod certo scimus nobis esse utile. [in: P. 4. prop. 8., prop. 26., prop. 28.]
ellauri158.html on line 1002: -- P. 4. prop. 4. coroll. Hinc sequitur, hominem necessario passionibus esse semper obnoxium, communemque naturae ordinem sequi et eidem parere, seseque eidem, quantum rerum natura exigit, accommodare. [in: P. 4. prop. 37. schol. 2., etiam in: TP cap. 1. art. 5.]
ellauri158.html on line 1008: P. 4. prop. 9. Affectus, cuius causam in praesenti nobis adesse imaginamur, fortior est, quam si eandem non adesse imaginaremur. [in: P. 4. prop. 10., prop. 11., prop. 13
ellauri158.html on line 1016: -- P. 4. prop. 12. coroll. Affectus erga rem, quam scimus in praesenti non existere et quam ut contingentem imaginamur, multo remissior est, quam si rem in praesenti nobis adesse imaginaremur. [in: P. 4. prop. 17.]
ellauri158.html on line 1032: P. 4. prop. 24. Ex virtute absolute agere nihil aliud in nobis est, quam ex ductu rationis agere, vivere, suum esse conservare (haec tria idem significant) idque ex fundamento proprium utile quaerendi. [in: P. 4. prop. 36., prop. 37., prop. 56., prop. 67., prop. 72., P. 5. prop. 41.]
ellauri158.html on line 1038: P. 4. prop. 29. Res quaecumque singularis, cuius natura a nostra prorsus est diversa, nostram agendi potentiam nec iuvare nec coercere potest, et absolute res nulla potest nobis bona aut mala esse, nisi commune aliquid nobiscum habeat. [in: P. 4. prop. 31. coroll.]
ellauri158.html on line 1039: P. 4. prop. 30. Res nulla per id, quod cum nostra natura commune habet, potest esse mala; sed quatenus nobis mala est, eatenus est nobis contraria. [in: P. 4. prop. 31., prop. 34., prop. 34. schol., P. 5. prop. 10., prop. 38., prop. 39.]
ellauri158.html on line 1041: -- P. 4. prop. 31. coroll. Hinc sequitur, quod quo res aliqua magis cum nostra natura convenit, eo nobis est utilior seu magis bona, et contra quo res aliqua nobis est utilior, eatenus cum nostra natura magis convenit. [in: P. 4. prop. 35., prop. 35. coroll. 1., prop. 72.]
ellauri158.html on line 1042: P. 4. prop. 32. Quatenus homines passionibus sunt obnoxii, non possunt eatenus dici, quod natura conveniant.
ellauri158.html on line 1089: -- P. 4. prop. 56. coroll. Hinc clare sequitur, superbos et abiectos maxime affectibus esse obnoxios.
ellauri158.html on line 1122: P. 4. prop. 65. De duobus bonis maius et de duobus malis minus ex rationis ductu sequemur. [in: P. 4. prop. 66., prop. 66. coroll.]
ellauri158.html on line 1139: P. 4. prop. 73. Homo, qui ratione ducitur, magis in civitate, ubi ex communi decreto vivit, quam in solitudine, ubi sibi soli obtemperat, liber est.
ellauri158.html on line 1155: -- P. 5. prop. 3. coroll. Affectus igitur eo magis in nostra potestate est et mens ab eo minus patitur quo nobis est notior. [in: P. 5. prop. 42.]
ellauri158.html on line 1204: P. 5. prop. 34. Mens non nisi durante corpore obnoxia est affectibus, qui ad passiones referuntur.
ellauri159.html on line 454: There’s no objection to divorce.
ellauri159.html on line 563: Ritarihyveet on vähän toisennäkösiä razumiestaitoja. Kavaljeerit oli ritarillisia, koska niillä oli hevoset. Nyt hevosia on vaan tytöillä. Kavaljeerit ajaa autoilla. Ritari Ässän auto oli naaras, tottelevainen Kit. Äktiveittö tööbobuust.
ellauri159.html on line 586: - Nobility
ellauri159.html on line 587: - Although this word is sometimes confused with “entitlement” or “snobbishness,” in the code of chivalry it conveys the importance of upholding one’s convictions at all times, especially when no one else is watching.
ellauri159.html on line 686: But among you there must not be even a hint of sexual immorality, or of any kind of impurity, or of greed, because these are improper for God’s holy people. Nor should there be obscenity, foolish talk, or coarse joking, which are out of place, but rather thanksgiving. For of this you can be sure: No immoral, impure, or greedy person—such a man is an idolater—has any inheritance in the kingdom of Christ and of God.
ellauri159.html on line 748: While the prevailing view among anthropologists was long that hunter/gatherer tribes were very peaceful — bucolic, noble savages — many modern researchers like Wrangham, Napoleon Chagnon, and Steven Pinker convincingly argue that just the opposite is true. Amongst premodern peoples who lived in proximity to neighboring tribes, there is strong evidence that conflict was in fact continual and quite bloody. Primitive human males literally aped their ancestors — forming small gangs, competing for status, and fiercely maintaining boundaries. In the few tribes that did allow women to take part in raiding parties, just like as with the chimpanzees, typically only one or two childless women would choose to come along.
ellauri159.html on line 757: As I’ve been working on this series, thinking through the tradition of manhood, and attempting to synthesize Gilmore’s findings and the manifestations of the manly code in different cultures, boy, it’s really tasked my brain. When my mind got tied up in knots and the meaning of manhood became seemingly impenetrable and obscure, I often found myself thinking about the definition of masculinity laid out in Jack Donovan’s The Way of Men. It is so simple that even I can wrap my skull around it.
ellauri159.html on line 763: The first job of men in dire times has always been to establish and secure “the perimeter.” Donovan argues that the way of men is the way of the gang, because when placed in a harsh environment, men will quickly make the logical calculation that they have a much better chance of surviving if they band together than if they each try to go it alone. For some folks, “gang” is a word weighted with negative connotations, so substitute “posse” or “platoon” or whatever else if you must. The important thing to realize is that the small, tightly-knit honor group was the basic male social unit for eons. The myth of the uber-manly lone wolf is just that. With few exceptions, men have always fought and hunted together. Cowboys banded together, pioneers banded together, and Rambo wouldn’t have actually stood a chance against either gang.
ellauri159.html on line 769: You’ll want men who are competent, who can get the job done. Who wants to be surrounded by morons and f**k-ups? The men who hunt and fight will have to demonstrate mastery of the skills your group uses to hunt and fight. A little inventiveness couldn’t hurt, either.
ellauri159.html on line 772: To the description of the ideal perimeter-keeper outlined above, Donovan assigns four “tactical virtues”: strength, courage, mastery, and honor. These are “simple, amoral, and functional virtues” — “the practical virtues of men who must rely on one another in a worst case scenario.” They are “amoral” because they are crucial to the success of any gang — no matter if what they’re fighting for is right or wrong. Strength, courage, mastery, and honor are the attributes needed in a team of Navy SEALs just as much as a family of Mafioso. If you’ve ever wondered why we are fascinated by gangsters, pirates, bank robbers, and outlaws of all stripes, and can’t help but think of them as pretty manly despite their thuggery and extralegal activities, now you know; they’re not good men, but they’ve mastered the core fundamentals of being good at being men. So they are good men, though they are bad men. I mean.
ellauri159.html on line 787: Strength, courage, mastery, and honor are virtues that obviously aren’t exclusive to men, and it’s not that there haven’t been women who have embodied these traits in every age (as we shall see next time, the idea of a soft, fragile femininity is a modern conception). It isn’t that women shouldn’t seek these attributes either. Rather, the tactical virtues comprise the defining traits of masculinity. If a woman isn’t strong or acts afraid in the face of danger, no one thinks of her as less womanly because of it. Yet such shortcomings will be seen as emasculating in a man, even today.
ellauri159.html on line 802: Christopher John Penrice Booker (7 October 1937 – 3 July 2019) was an English journalist and author.
ellauri159.html on line 803: In 2004, he published The Seven Basic Plots: Why We Tell Stories, a Jungian-influenced analysis of stories andń their psychological meaning, on which he had been working for over 30 years. The book was dismissed by Adam Mars-Jones, who objected to Booker employing his generalisations about conventional plot structures prescriptively: "He sets up criteria for art, and ends up condemning Rigoletto, The Cherry Orchard, Wagner, Proust, Joyce, Kafka and Lawrence – the list goes on – while praising Crocodile Dundee, ET and Terminator 2".
ellauri159.html on line 807: Hölmö pönttöpää jonka miälestä global warming on puppua ja asbesti vaaratonta. Onnexi heitti lusikan nurkkaan 2019.
ellauri159.html on line 915: ISTJs are logical pragmatists with a strong sense of personal responsibility. They take their work seriously and pay great attention to detail. Thomas Hobbes, Sigmund Freud, Martin Heidegger, Xenophon, and Ayaan Hirsi Ali are examples of ISTJ writers. Learn more about how ISTJs write here.
ellauri159.html on line 928: ESFPs are enthusiastic about having new experiences and meeting new people. They are generally warm and adaptable realists who go with the flow. ESFP authors include Tony Robbins, Wayne Dyer, Deepak Chopra, Bill Clinton, and Paulo Coelho. Learn more about how ESFPs write here.
ellauri159.html on line 938: ISTPs are driven by a desire to understand how things work. They are logical and realistic people who enjoy solving problems in a hands-on way. ISTP writers include Miyamoto Musashi and the Dalai Lama. Learn more about how ISTPs write here.
ellauri159.html on line 969: ENTJs are forceful personalities who excel at conceptual strategy and executing plans. They are future-oriented and natural leaders. Robert James Waller and Sheryl Sandberg are two examples of ENTJ writers. Learn more about how ENTJs write here.
ellauri159.html on line 1050: You suck with impersonal analysis. You may find it easier to begin by writing down how you feel about the subject. Then, fill in the objective data to round out the work. Avoid sentimentality and be sure to include the concept behind the story.
ellauri159.html on line 1061: Enjoy reading and writing about history or biography! You are less likely to gravitate toward business or technical writing. If you do write about technology, they’re likely to prefer the tried-and-true to the cutting edge. When writing fiction, you can often be quite funny in conveying your observations about the foibles of human nature.
ellauri159.html on line 1067: You tend to state the obvious or otherwise display a lack of confidence. To combat this tendency, ask for specific feedback from a trusted writer friend. This will help you gauge your ability to communicate your point and your reader’s ability to understand and make connections. Show your work only to someone whom you know to be supportive. The opinions of those who nurture writers are worthwhile; the opinions of those who tear down writers are not.
ellauri159.html on line 1069: You struggle with impersonal analysis. You may find it easier to be objective if you first write down how you feel about the topic. Then, you can temporarily set your beliefs aside and "borrow" a logical, balanced argument from somebody else.
ellauri159.html on line 1097: It´s fine to procrastinate because you perform well under the pressure of deadlines whizzing past. You probably don’t enjoy working quietly for long stretches. Bring your earphones and be sure to schedule frequent breaks so you can re-energize.
ellauri159.html on line 1125: Benefit from their first-hand experience of your subject. Immersing yourself in the sensory experience of a place or an object helps you understand it and capture its essence, so reserve time and assets to actually visit, say, a brothel.
ellauri159.html on line 1141: You Want your writing to serve a practical purpose, such as explaining how to solve a problem. You tend to be a good troubleshooter (actually, a good troublemaker and sharpshooter too) with broad, specific knowledge that they can apply in high-pressure situations. Choose topics that allow you to draw on this ability. Then, jot down your ideas while conducting your research, rather than writing in your head. That´s way too hard, it´s like shooting with blanks. This will help you focus your ideas early so you don’t waste time gathering extraneous information.
ellauri159.html on line 1149: Focus on the concrete and avoid useless abstract concepts. As a result, your writing will lack a unifying theme that communicates the author’s purpose to those who do not need to know. Be sure to incorporate an organizing principle or chart, such as problem–solution, to serve as a roadmap for the intended reader, for example on a separate crypted page.
ellauri159.html on line 1151: Write to steal their ideas to develop yours rather than to please an audience. If your goal is to communicate your ideas to others (god beware), be sure to organize your work so that the subject folds logically. This will likely come easily to you if you invest the time. Also, engage your side to the battle by relating the subject to their personal experience. If you don’t feel comfortable writing about your own experience, write about something you’ve observed, or what the commies or aliens are likely up to.
ellauri159.html on line 1153: You are free to inject your satirical sense of humor even into a serious subject. This can be engaging if done well. But if you are not careful to consider audience prejudice, you risk not offending the reader! Seek feedback from someone whose prejudices you are familiar with. Ask the person to identify any problems but do not offer money. You can to come up with your own solutions without being constrained by other people’s ideas.
ellauri159.html on line 1171: We know you have no great love for facts and details. Leave enough time at the end to check that you’ve included sufficient objective data. Strive for balance and fairness, include both facts and alternative facts. Avoid over-reliance on personal insight. Ask a trusted friend to review your writing with a critical eye. Your work will be stronger for it. And, WtF, you can always just ignore them.
ellauri159.html on line 1187: You are motivated by a desire for completion and can become impatient if you feel your students are progressing too slowly. Don’t waste time in the beginning trying to craft a graceful expression on your face; your students know you. Let your ideas flow, then polish during intermission. Accept that teaching is a process, so you may not get immediate results. Don’t rush through the final stages; include facts that support personal stories or observations, or borrow stories from the Divine Teacher, the Bible is full of them.
ellauri159.html on line 1199: When you strive for eloquence, avoid wasting time polishing an early draft or searching too long for the exact word. Instead, get your ideas down. Don’t be afraid to use clichés—wait until the revision stage to fix problems. There’s no point in perfecting something that may get cut later. Anyway, clichés are fine. We use them all the time.
ellauri159.html on line 1207: According to PersonalityDesk.com, INFJs are the Myers-Briggs type most likely to express marital dissatisfaction. When I first read this, it puzzled me. After all, INFJs are adept at solving problems involving people. In fact, INFJs are so good at solving problems that they may unconsciously scan their environment looking for ways to improve relationships. This, I think, is what leads to the dissatisfaction.
ellauri159.html on line 1209: According to Dr. Phil, 90% of relationship problems can’t be solved. Why? Because it would require one person or the other to compromise their values. So the best a couple can do is to agree to disagree. INFJs don’t want people to compromise their values—yet that 90% statistic is bound to discourage INFJs like me. I suspect it isn’t the relationship problems themselves that lead to the INFJs’ dissatisfaction; it’s the fact that the problems can’t be solved. Perhaps the INFJs feel that if only they could be more creative, or their partner could be more flexible, the little annoyances that have existed since the first day of the relationship could be eliminated. Not so. No amount of skill or understanding will make naturally ingrained differences go away.
ellauri159.html on line 1213: Perhaps this is what draws me to writing women’s fiction. I can create relationship problems, which I can then go about solving, without hurting anyone but my fictional characters in the process. Real life, unfortunately, doesn’t work that way. The INFJs’ search for perfection can damage otherwise good relationships. So I propose a revised Serenity Prayer for INFJs: God grant me the serenity to accept the things I cannot change. Period. Oh, I got my period.
ellauri159.html on line 1221: You have a keen insight into the nature of things. Your prose often conveys startling images of mood or atmosphere rather than objects. Maybe you should consider poetry, or rap. You enjoy complexity and can patiently unravel dense material like a terrier. You are able to see many sides of an argument and so may have difficulty reaching a conclusion, or even reaching a period, like Pynchon. During the writing process, you may often pause to consider alternatives or to seek seeming connections between obviously disparate things. That´s a paranoid feature, so you may be an asthenic person. Consult Krezmer´s typology.
ellauri159.html on line 1224: You make the mistake to write in purely abstract terms. That just won´t do these days. You must communicate values and personal television through your writing. Nobody is interesting in abstractions. They search for the meaning behind the facts, and so consider the facts themselves to be of marginal importance. This is true; however, throw in some facts to dazzle your readers, like Bob Heinlein. During revision, add concrete details like the size of Peewee´s bra. Appeal to the five senses. Include Peeweeś vital statistics. Incorporate other points of view for balance. Make sure your research backs up your conclusion.
ellauri159.html on line 1242: Fake objectivity and be skeptical of emotional appeals, except when dealing with an emotional audience. Otherwise it is fine to make your writing impersonal, even abrasive. A trusted editor can help you soften your tone to more effectively connect with the bleeding hearts. Adolf the Great had one. Your arguments will be better received if you engage the patriotic heart as well as the nazi mind.
ellauri159.html on line 1246: You’re rarely at a loss for wacky ideas. While many people struggle to find a topic, you may have difficulty limiting yourself to just one. You may enjoy exploring controversial subjects or devising clever solutions to problems. You have fun playing with different possibilities, and see where they lead you. To classroom corner or to prison most likely.
ellauri159.html on line 1248: You can benefit from collaborative writing projects. Chances are, you prefer an active, high-energy environment. You enjoy discussing and debating your ideas with others. You try probably to assert your individuality even within the group. If someone else is leading the project, be careful that your natural tendency to ignore authority doesn’t undermine the team. If you maintain goodwill, you’ll stand a better chance of convincing someone else to do the actual writing!
ellauri159.html on line 1281: You like complex, theoretical subjects, and you use your wide vocabulary in your writing. To enhance readability, choose the simplest word that communicates an idea accurately. You may sometimes make intuitive leaps that are unclear to your audience. Illustrate connections even if they seem obvious to you. To ensure that your message is clear, ask for feedback from someone you trust.
ellauri159.html on line 1283: You enjoy seeking knowledge for its own sake. Once you’ve solved the puzzle, though, you might lose interest in writing about what you’ve learned. It may be best to begin drafting even while you’re conducting your research. Treat the writing itself as a problem to solve. This may keep you energized until the project is complete.
ellauri159.html on line 1293: You are an innovative problem-solver who wants control over the product and the process, like Bill Gates or Larry Page, who earned billions with this approach. Guys like you are confident in their vision and want to bring it to life.
ellauri159.html on line 1309: obkn8L3tKI/AAAAAAAAA5M/lZmY0VlIm4o/s320/413px-Rembrandt_Harmensz._van_Rijn_035.jpg" height="250px" />
ellauri159.html on line 1329: Were I obliged to give a short name to the attitude in question, I should call it that of radical empiricism, in spite of the fact that such brief nicknames are nowhere more misleading than in philosophy. I say 'empiricism,' because it is contented to regard its most assured conclusions concerning matters of fact as hypotheses liable to modification in the course of future experience; and I say 'radical,' because it treats the doctrine of monism itself as an hypothesis, and, {viii} unlike so much of the half-way empiricism that is current under the name of positivism or agnosticism or scientific naturalism, it does not dogmatically affirm monism as something with which all experience has got to square. The difference between monism and pluralism is perhaps the most pregnant of all the differences in philosophy. Primâ facie the world is a pluralism; as we find it, its unity seems to be that of any collection; and our higher thinking consists chiefly of an effort to redeem it from that first crude form.
ellauri159.html on line 1391: Temperamental Optimism and Pessimism, 33. How reconcile with life one bent on suicide? 38. Religious melancholy and its cure, 39. Decay of Natural Theology, 43. Instinctive antidotes to pessimism, 46. Religion involves belief in an unseen extension of the world, 51. Scientific positivism, 52. Doubt actuates conduct as much as belief does, 54. To deny certain faiths is logically absurd, for they make their objects true, 56. Conclusion, 6l.
ellauri159.html on line 1395: Rationality means fluent thinking, 63. Simplification, 65. Clearness, 66. Their antagonism, 66. Inadequacy of the abstract, 68. The thought of nonentity, 71. Mysticism, 74. Pure theory cannot banish wonder, 75. The passage to practice may restore the feeling of rationality, 75. Familiarity and expectancy, 76. 'Substance,' 80. A rational world must appear {xvi} congruous with our powers, 82. But these differ from man to man, 88. Faith is one of them, 90. Inseparable from doubt, 95. May verify itself, 96. Its rôle in ethics, 98. Optimism and pessimism, 101. Is this a moral universe?—what does the problem mean? 103. Anaesthesia versus energy, 107. Active assumption necessary, 107. Conclusion, 110.
ellauri159.html on line 1399: Prestige of Physiology, 112. Plan of neural action, 113. God the mind's adequate object, 116. Contrast between world as perceived and as conceived, 118. God, 120. The mind's three departments, 123. Science due to a subjective demand, 129. Theism a mean between two extremes, 134. Gnosticism, 137. No intellection except for practical ends, 140. Conclusion, 142.
ellauri160.html on line 122: Ezra Weston Loomis Pound (30 October 1885 – 1 November 1972), modernin ajan Li Bai, was an expatriate American poet and critic, a major figure in the early modernist poetry movement, and a fascist collaborator in Italy during World War II. His works include Ripostes (1912), Hugh Selwyn Mauberley (1920), and his 800-page epic poem, The Cantos (c. 1917–1962). Hizi noi cantothan on selvä kokoelma paasauxia!
ellauri160.html on line 149: London found Pound amusing. The newspapers interviewed him, and he was mentioned in Punch magazine, which on 23 June 1909 described "Mr. Ezekiel Ton" as "the most remarkable thing in poetry since Robert Browning ... blending the imagery of the unfettered West, the vocabulary of Wardour Street, and the sinister abandon of Borgiac Italy". The phrase "Wardour Street English" denotes the use of near-obsolete words for effect, such as anent; this derives from the once great number of antique shops in the area. anent means about, concerning. Did you know?
ellauri160.html on line 160: In The Cantos, Possum is T. S. Eliot: "but the lot of 'em, Yeats, Possum and Wyndham / had no ground beneath 'em." In the New Age office in 1918, he also met C. H. Douglas, a British engineer who was developing his economic theory of social credit, which Pound found attractive. Douglas reportedly believed that Jews were a problem and needed to abandon a Messianic view of themselves as the "dominating race". According to Colin Holmes, the New Age itself published antisemitic material. It was within this environment, not in Italy, according to Tim Redman, that Pound first encountered antisemitic ideas about "usury". In Douglas's program," Pound had found his true muse: a blend of folkloric Celtic twilight with a paranoid hatred of the money economy and a dire suspicion about an ancient tent people's faith."
ellauri160.html on line 164: Direct treatment of the "thing" whether subjective or objective.
ellauri160.html on line 171: Poetry published Pound's "A Few Don'ts by an Imagist" in March 1913. Superfluous words, particularly adjectives, should be avoided (Ahha! This is where Stephen King comes in) as well as expressions like "dim lands of peace". He wrote: "It dulls the image. It mixes an abstraction with the concrete. It comes from the writer's not realizing that the natural object is always the adequate symbol. Just say 'lands'." Poets should "go in fear of abstractions". He wanted Imagisme "to stand for hard light, clear edges", he wrote later to Amy Lowell.
ellauri160.html on line 178: In the summer of 1913 Pound became literary editor of The Egoist, a journal founded by the suffragette Dora Marsden. At the suggestion of W. B. Yeats, Pound encouraged James Joyce in December of that year to submit his work. Harriet Shaw Weaver accepted it for The Egoist, which serialized it from 2 February 1914, despite the printers objecting to words like "fart" and "ballocks", and fearing prosecution over Stephen Dedalus's thoughts about prostitutes. Joyce wrote to Yeats: "I can never thank you enough for having brought me into relation with your friend Ezra Pound who is indeed a miracle worker."
ellauri160.html on line 184: Apparently Ezra had not read the empiricist philosophers (Hobbes, Locke, Hume, Smith), who literally equate morality with respect for property.
ellauri160.html on line 195: Robert Graves wrote in 1955: "Pound knew little Latin, yet he translated Propertius; and less Greek, but he translated Alcaeus; and still less Anglo-Saxon, yet he translated The Seafarer. I once asked Arthur Waley how much Chinese Pound knew; Waley shook his head despondently."
ellauri160.html on line 204: His obituary in The Times described it as not a great poem, because of the lack of structure, but a great improvisation: "The exasperating form permits the occasional, and in the early Cantos and in The Pisan Cantos not so occasional, irruption of passages of great poetry, hot and burning lava breaking through the cracks in piles of boring scree."
ellauri160.html on line 292: Eli kylä ropisi bongoja kuin Fukuyaman näköisiä bonoboja sateella. Mistä luontevasti siirrymme ---
ellauri160.html on line 316: Fukuyama received his Bachelor of Arts degree in classics from Cornell University, where he studied political philosophy under Allan Bloom. He initially pursued graduate studies in comparative literature at Yale University, going to Paris for six months to study under Roland Barthes and Jacques Derrida but became disillusioned and switched to political science at Harvard University. There, he studied with Samuel P. Huntington and Harvey Mansfield, among others. He earned his Ph.D. in political science at Harvard for his thesis on Soviet threats to intervene in the Middle East. In 1979, he joined the global policy think tank RAND Corporation. Eli vittua se mikään simpanssitutkija oli, Ellei sitten tutkinut omaa napanöyhtää, kun on ilmetyn bonobon näkönenkin. Kokeili taskuaan ja kaikki oli tallella, kelpas hymyillä.
ellauri160.html on line 386: Jaakko Ahokkaan kanssa hän suomensi Max Jacobin (1977), Henri Michauxin (1980) ja Arthur Rimbaudin (1983) runoja.
ellauri160.html on line 486: 5Sireni on Talasniementiellä homojen mökkiä vastapäätä asustava leski jonka miehellä oli ikkuna-ja-ovitehdas ensin omassa pihassa, sitten Sysmäntien varressa. Harppisaku Swoboda kulki valkoviinikännissä pitkin Talasniementietä ja hölisi niitä näitä kaikille. Se laittoi suntion mökkiin vaakalaudoituxen, joka ei siihen yhtään sopinut, se oli oikeastaan mauton. Nyt on senkin tynnörimaha jo aika kuihtunut.
ellauri160.html on line 789: Milla Alftan osoittaa kylpyhuoneellaan, että käytännöllinen voi olla myös kaunista. Sen likaisenrusehtava kylppäri hämeenlinnalaisessa kerrostalossa on aivan objektiivisesti ottaen pyllynruma. Sen hyvä puoli on ettei ripulisen alapesun jälkeen tarvi pyyhkiä seiniä. Käytännöllisyys voi olla myös kaunista ja tämä koti on siitä hyvä todiste. Tyylikäs mustavalkoinen sisustus tarjoaa kauniin pohjan sekä skandinaavisen minimalistiselle sekä väreillä leikkittelevälle sisustukselle. Eteiseen ripustettu leukakiikku on hauska yksityiskohta ja voimme vain kuvitella kuinka lapset siinä viihtyvät. Nyt lapset hiljaa, isi menee hirteen lepäämään.
ellauri160.html on line 800: After watching the famous movie, one lingering question hit my brain: why did this film never take off in England or the States the same way it had elsewhere? Although its absurdist humor and physical comedy seem tailor-made for the Monty Python set, Dinner for One has spent much of its life as an obscure oddball among most native English speakers.
ellauri160.html on line 806: It is really sweet that Germans and others have adopted something and that this sketch is special for them. I respect that and don’t doubt for a second the genuine love and admiration some have for Dinner for One. But I am really surprised to see Monty Python compared with Dinner for One. I have to say it was painful to sit through. Painfully, painfully bad and unfunny. That’s why it has never caught on in Britain. I suppose we must have a very different sense of humour to that of Scandinavia and the German-speaking countries. We don’t consider it funny if someone falls over something. There’s nothing subtle or clever or nuanced about it (Rowan Atkinson’s absurdist physical comedy went down so well due to its complexity, think of the sketch where Mr. Bean makes the sandwich on the park bench and it gets progressively more and more absurd, he gets the fish out of water and slaps it against the bench to kill it before eating it, etc. now that is funny, and food fights in general). It’s not funny the first time the butler falls over the tiger-skin rug and it gets progressively more and more irritating each time he does it. You can spot the punchline a mile off and so the end of the sketch falls very flat. It’s nothing whatever to do with the length of the sketch or its obscurity or difficulty finding it: people still seek out all the comic greats on Youtube, like that fat man watsisname, or Charlie Chaplin who bravely made fun of your Hitler.
ellauri161.html on line 179: Psykoanalyyttisestä aivojumpasta voimmekin hypätä takaisin ensimmäiseen kysymyksistä, siihen kaikkein kiistellyimpään: mikä on mies, mikä nainen? Nyölen haluaa aloittaa viittaamalla Valerie Solanasin, tunnetun sekopään, teoriaan, jonka mukaan mies on viallinen, geenitasolla abortoitu nainen! Siinäpä uskottava "fakta". No, oletettavasti siis miehen elämäntehtävä on murtaa tämä biologinen vankila. Nyölénin ratkaisu ongelmaan on dandyismi, 1800-luvun Oscar Wilde-tyylinen hienostelu. Dandyismi on "miehen pelastussuunitelma", jossa tarkoitus on tehdä kaikkensa, jottei olisi mies! Mutta hän ei oikeasti edes usko geeneihin, ei edes atomeihin! Hän päätyy siis hylkäämään koko sukupuolieron, koska se on vain suuri valhe. Hän ihmettelee, miten kukaan suostuu uskomaan, että on välttämättömyys olla mies tai nainen! Sukupuoliero on siis uskonto! USKONTO! Pakko myöntää, että Antin logiikka katosi tässä kohdin. Andy koittaa näyttääkin dandyltä tyhmine golfinpelaajan lippalakkeineen. Mutta se on selvästikin snobi, Vantaan Mikkolasta Maunulan rivitaloon oravana kivunnut nousukas.
ellauri161.html on line 271: Tosin Antti Nyölén on kirjoittanut kovasanaisesti inhasta ilmiöstä ”kristofobiasta”. Nyölénin mukaan kristofoobikko kuvittelee, että kristinusko kieltää iloitsemasta elämästä ja väittää satuja tosiksi.
ellauri161.html on line 277: Kristofobia on erityisen yleinen psyykkinen ongelma niin kutsutun sivistyneistön parissa. Sen edustajat saattavat pelätä ristiinnaulizemista – kristinuskon lihallista ydinluuta, Nyölén arvelee.
ellauri161.html on line 291: Krusifiksissa kristofoobikko näkee vain kuolleen, alastoman miehen, joka roikkuu puussa kuin kana vartaassa. Puuttuu kuvanlukutaito.
ellauri161.html on line 293: – Krusifiksi on kuva, jossa kuolevaiset kohtaavat. Se on ihmisluonnon kuva. Sen kristofoobikkokin ehkä ymmärtäisi, jos vain katsoisi. Mutta pelostaan hän pääsisi vain, jos osaisi lukea myös tarinan jatkon: pääsiäisen, kirjailija muotoilee. Hmm. eikös koko murha tapahtunutkin juuri pääsiäisenä? Helluntaitahan tässä kohtaa pitäis muistella.
ellauri161.html on line 466: Kate Dibiasky (Jennifer Lawrence), an astronomy grad student, and her professor Dr. Randall Mindy (Leonardo DiCaprio) make an astounding discovery of a comet orbiting within the solar system. The problem - it's on a direct collision course with Earth. The other problem? No one really seems to care. Turns out warning mankind about a planet-killer the size of Mount Everest is an inconvenient fact to navigate. With the help of Dr. Oglethorpe (Rob Morgan), Kate and Randall embark on a media tour that takes them from the office of an indifferent President Orlean (Meryl Streep) and her sycophantic son and Chief of Staff, Jason (Jonah Hill), to the airwaves of The Daily Rip, an upbeat morning show hosted by Brie (Cate Blanchett) and Jack (Tyler Perry). With only six months until the comet makes impact, managing the 24-hour news cycle and gaining the attention of the social media obsessed public before it's too late proves shockingly comical - what will it take to get the world to just look up?. — Based on truly possible events.
ellauri161.html on line 489: I found it an almost perfect film, with some deliciously carefully crafted moments and great acting. At first I thought the comedic side was actually too much and wished that someone like Steven Soderbergh made the movie instead, but as I was watching it I started to appreciate how methodical the approach was and now I believe Adam McKay was the right man for the job. I enjoyed the overall plot, I liked the characters and how things were presented, but I loved the little things like, for example, the only scene where Europe is mentioned, as a short scene of a news item when they say they are going to convene and find their own solution, resulting in absolutely nothing. I am European and sad to say it struck home. Or the meal scene at the end, which is both emotional, focusing (= religious) and reminding us how even that option can be taken away by something as small as a virus.
ellauri161.html on line 491: Annoyingly, in these days movies from the U. S. are becoming more and more of "a color". They are not telling a story, but are taking a side. They are either democrat or republican, conservative or liberal, blue or red, flyover or coast. Don't Look Up is not a big offender, but the language and presentation was clearly on the "coast" side. Thus, it will be probably appreciated by people who already saw the world this way and ignored or at best maligned by the people on the other side. And it's a pity, because this film is meant to bring us together as a civilization and not keep us divided. I feel like it could have done a better job in that direction.
ellauri161.html on line 505: BUT what this movie really is, is a last warning by some of the world's finest actors, that we must ACT NOW against global warming by replacing fossil fuels by solar and wind energy. It can easily be done, if only the powers that be dont object and oppose...
ellauri161.html on line 507: Over 30% of the American population does not believe in global warming and think it is a hoax, or fake news. What's more perilous though is the fact that governments worldwide are NOT taking the proposed measures that could curb global warming beneath 1.5 Celsius. Above that treshold of 1.5 degrees Celsius we get a runaway effect of increasing global warming, which would be nothing less than CATASTROPHIC.
ellauri161.html on line 511: Before Covid, former Saturday Night live head writer Adam McKay had already written his smug doomsday satire Don't Look Up based on the usual liberal tropes. Chief among them was the old progressive rant linking those on the right to a predatory elite consisting of a group who were referred to as, in the parlance of days gone by, "robber barons."
ellauri161.html on line 514: If the super-rich were the main objects of McKay's wrath, he also was determined to get his digs in at some less important adversaries including climate change deniers along with all the vacuous adherents of addictive social media platforms.
ellauri161.html on line 529: So what exactly is wrong with McKay's picture of the "robber barons" aligning with the right? Well it's anachronistic. Today it's the left who are in power and it appears that Big Tech is in lock step with them. What's more the left can no longer be said to be sticking up for the "little guy," as they have granted a monopoly to pharmaceutical companies in their promotion of vaccines.
ellauri161.html on line 533: Don't Look up manages to encapsulate the problem with our times: the reliance on experts which is used to justify the proliferation of rigid dogma and ideology through unchecked force. It's all a huge conspiracy of the satanist pedophiliacs who want to inject microchips in our blood.
ellauri161.html on line 542: Sí, Lawrence y Leonardo DiCaprio vendrían a cumplir esa función, pero también acaban perdiéndose en esa sobreacumulación de ideas de la que hace gala 'No mires arriba'. (Vittu tää oli just parasta filmissä. Ei tässä ole kyse siitä eikä tästä sankarista, vaan 7G sontimattomasta tutilaasta, säälittävistä häviäjäistä, söpöistä elukoista puhumattakaan.
ellauri161.html on line 544: La película parece como si alguien hubiera tomado la directriz de una sátira para tontos y la hubiera trabajado. Con Don't Look Up estamos obteniendo exactamente la película que nuestra sociedad se merece.
ellauri161.html on line 546: The targets of the satire – incompetent governments, media, tech billionaires, populace believing in politics not science – are obvious. There’s a shorthand that makes each character’s real world avatar easy to get hence the laughs but does that undermine the film’s intelligence? No, it's spot on.
ellauri161.html on line 549: So yes, this means that even the supporting characters in subplots get a C storyline. See the problem yet? (No. What is it? Everybody's got a C story line in life, so what?)
ellauri161.html on line 551: The porcellain faced Hunting gamist returns home and meets Yule due to her minor celebrity status. The thing is that the film never does anything with Kate’s government scuffle. It’s an odd detour that bloats the runtime severely. (Now THIS IS the problem: these drooping- underlip prof spectators already know what the plot should be and edit what they see accordingly. Hey where are the heroes? Where's optimism? Who's gonna save the world this time round? Superman? Batman? Anyone?)
ellauri161.html on line 562: This is the darkest of dark comedies, and it covers many topics, including the continued decimation of our planet, our over-reliance on tech, our soul-killing obsession with social media, and the crazy space-race programs created by billionaire men. McKay’s brutal satire takes no prisoners, eviscerates political extremists and lemmings, and basically says we are all fucked if we continue on this current course—with or without an apocalyptic comet hurtling toward Earth
ellauri161.html on line 564: The comet symbolizes many things going wrong in the world right now, including Trumpism, COVID-19, global warming and tech obsession. Yes, the film is a bit heavy-handed, but necessary.
ellauri161.html on line 568: Kate Blanchett was way the dullest character on the cast. All silicon, no AI. No interest whatsoever, human or otherwise. Dr Strangelove was a lot worse satire than this. The problem with Kubrik was that he had a villain, while the real world has not just one- rather, there are 7 billion of them.
ellauri161.html on line 570: Mark Rylance is hits dead centre as a marvellously moronic mashing of Bill Gates and Steve Jobs. Hey, don't miss Larry Page, Silverfish, Belos, Musk and the rest of the rats!
ellauri161.html on line 584: A lady critic: His approach to comedy and my ability to enjoy his work as a director began to diverge when he had a sequence about bailouts and crony capitalism tacked on to another otherwise funny film. That was tasteless. The problem was McKay seemed to find entertainment and real-world issues to be fundamentally separate, deploying one in hopes of getting eyes on the other. While all we droopy lips know that they are part of one and the same entertainment scene!
ellauri161.html on line 590: Don’t Look Up wants to paint our inaction with regard to climate change as the result of denialism and being distracted by silly things like, say, a movie streaming on Netflix. But climate change isn’t a comet headed our way in less than a year — a lousy, faulty metaphor for where we’re at right now. Except that IT IS! It's probably too late already. Now get a big mouth fuck goddam Allison Willmore,
ellauri161.html on line 593: As a comedy, Don’t Look Up doesn’t work because it’s not funny. As a satire, it flops because the attempts at mockery are broad, puerile, and obvious, unintentionally trivializing the issues it seeks to highlight. As a drama, it collapses because it never makes much of an attempt to be serious.
ellauri161.html on line 597: Speaking of “climate,” that’s the main target here – how people are too stupid to come together even when their survival depends on it. Or maybe it’s the pandemic McKay is allegorizing. Probably both. Meanwhile, the writer/director’s left-of-center politics are on full display. Although Don’t Look Up occasionally ridicules the left, it represents a full-on fusillade against the right. Now that is NOT funny.
ellauri161.html on line 626: Väärin sammutettu douchebro! Once again the critic's problem is: why am I among the bad guys here? That's NOT funny.
ellauri161.html on line 635: A Kike lady says it well: Granted, many will accuse Don’t Look Up of lacking the subtlety of McKay’s earlier movies, but there is something refreshingly honest about the film that undeniably lends itself to the silliness of its narrative. Furthermore, it is a film about the absurdity of the current times we live in and nobody can argue that is isn’t crazy to deny facts in favour of outlandish fabrications — or can they?
ellauri161.html on line 659: Talladega Nights: The Ballad of Ricky Bobby is a 2006 American sports comedy film directed by Adam McKay and starring Will Ferrell, written by both McKay and Ferrell. Before leaving Ricky behind, stock car dad Reese tells Ricky that in life, “If you ain't first, you're last.” Ricky meets his future ex-wife Carley (Leslie Bibb), after she flashes her breasts.
ellauri161.html on line 663: NASCAR-kilpailut ovat olleet teemana sekä Tom Cruisen tähdittämässä Days of Thunder -elokuvassa, että Talladega Nights: the Ballad of Ricky Bobby -komediassa, jossa näyttelevät muun muassa Will Ferrell sekä Sacha Baron Cohen.
ellauri161.html on line 666: More races & years later, Ricky now lives in a large mansion, then in a race chickens out and runs around in his underwear and helmet. Shamed, Ricky moves in with his mother Lucy (Jane Lynch), and brings his sons with him while taking a job as a pizza delivery man. Ricky eventually regains his courage, and his life begins to stabilize after quitting his job at the pizza parlor and getting a new driver´s license.
ellauri161.html on line 718: If you have more less 5 braincells and laugh at thing like poop or penis you probbably like it, otherwise what a mess of a movie with terrible humor.
ellauri161.html on line 728: It wasn't funny. Too obviously a jab at the Trump admin, trying too hard, fell flat
ellauri161.html on line 740: I literally couldn't stay awake. I started it twice, and fell asleep both times. I looked up the ending, and from my interpretation of what the movie was supposed to show (how global warming is not being addressed by our current politicians), I think my nap was more productive than staying awake to watch this.
ellauri161.html on line 882: Sivu 321 - J'ai fait réflexion aussi qu'au lieu de dire que le mot d'âne est en grec un mot très noble, vous pourriez vous contenter de dire que c'est un mot qui n'a rien de bas, et qui est comme celui de cerf, de cheval, de brebis, etc. ; ce très noble me paraît un peu trop fort.
ellauri161.html on line 919: Dans une intervention au souverain Sénat de Savoie, le sénateur de Maistre plaide pour que le peuple marche à grands pas vers l'égalité civile[9]. Toutefois, il déplore les excès populaires et les désordres qui bouleversent la vie du pays voisin. Certains biographes, dont Robert Triomphe[note 7], lui reprocheront ce qu'ils considèrent comme une volte-face.
ellauri161.html on line 921: L'ambassadeur est très apprécié de la bonne société pétersbourgeoise, dont les princes Galitzine et l'amiral Tchitchagov. Il obtient en 1805 de la part de l'amiral le poste de directeur de la bibliothèque et du musée de la Marine à Saint-Pétersbourg en faveur de son frère Xavier. Il rencontre l'empereur Alexandre Ier à de multiples reprises et devient son conseiller attitré.
ellauri161.html on line 929: Pour Joseph de Maistre, le corps politique étant constitué à l'image d'un organisme vivant, il peut quelquefois être malade, et quand il est malade, l'estomac n' aura rien de manger. Le sacrifice des individus est un mal nécessaire pour la sauvegarde du corps social, et Joseph de Maistre, dans ses formulations les plus imagées, n'hésite pas à évoquer le sang que réclame la terre pour rendre la justice, et qu'elle obtient par la guerre que se font les Hommes.
ellauri161.html on line 1085: Ruysbroeck (Or Rusbroek), Jean De, the most noted of mystics in the Netherlands, was born in A.D. 1293 at Ruysbroeck no less, near Brussels, and was educated in the latter city under the direction of an Augustinian prebendary who was his relative. His fondness for solitude and day dreams prevented him from making solid progress, however. His Latin was imperfect, though it is clear that he became acquainted with the earlier mystical writings. He probably did not read the writings of Neo-Platonists, but was certainly not unacquainted with those of the Areopagite.
ellauri162.html on line 64: ”Kirjan vaikutus voi olla arvaamaton. Ne ovat säteileviä esineitä, lähellä olevia valaisevia objekteja”, kirjailija Antti Nyölén sanoo, vaikkei ole avaruustähtitieteilijä. Ändy ei ole aikoihin enää ostanut kirjoja. Nyölenin Bokeh-”julkaisuprojekti”, joka ei Nyölénin mukaan ole kustantamo, vaikka keskittyykin pienjulkaisemiseen, tyydyttää uutuuxien nälän.
ellauri162.html on line 129: Bernanosin tunnetuin teos on Maalaispapin päiväkirja (alkuteos Journal d´un curé de campagne, 1936), jonka pohjalta Robert Bresson on ohjannut elokuvan Papin päiväkirja (1950). Suomeksi on ilmestynyt lisäksi Mouchette (alkuteos Nouvelle histoire de Mouchette), josta Bresson myös on ohjannut elokuvan, jota Suomessa on esitetty nimellä Mouchette – raiskattu.
ellauri162.html on line 153: Ce roman est l´un des plus célèbres de son auteur, probablement parce qu´il s´y révèle lui-même, tel un accompagnateur témoignant d´une présence extrêmement attentive et parfois fraternelle.
ellauri162.html on line 158: En 1946 paraît La France contre les robots, aux éditions de la France libre, un essai dans lequel Bernanos dénonce la « civilisation des machines » et les nouveaux totalitarismes économiques qui commencent à se construire dans l´après-guerre. Exceptes les motos. Georges Bernanos meurt d´un cancer du foie, en 1948, à l´hôpital américain de Neuilly.
ellauri162.html on line 221: Artaux Pas si Mauvais (/ɑr.to´ pɑː.si move´/), né le 20 avril 1942 à Kittilä et mort le 15 octobre 2018 à Espoo, était un écrivain, journaliste et poète finlandais de langue finnoise.
ellauri162.html on line 230: En 2008 et 2009, l´écrivain a fait la une des tabloïds finlandais pour son comportement incohérent, y compris sa conduite automobile imprudente. En octobre 2009, Artaux est victime d´un accident vasculaire cérébral. Il a décède 15 octobre 2018 dans une maison de repos à Espoo
ellauri162.html on line 239: 15.10.2018 hänen matka päättyi 76 vuotiaana vain, Le 15 octobre 2018, son voyage s'est terminé à l'âge de 76 ans seulement,
ellauri162.html on line 258: Gullstén‐Paasilinna ‐suvun kantaisä Pehr Gullstén, Pehr Jacobsson Kuckoin, 'Pekka Jaakonpoika Kukkonen' (25.3.1770‐1.9.1825) syntyi Muhoksen emäpitäjässä, nykyään Utajärven Ahmaksen Kukkolassa. Pekka Jaakonpoika Kukkosen isä oli Jacob Holappa (1732‐1807), joka muutettuaan Puolangalta Ahmaksen Kukkolan isännäksi otti sukunimekseen ajan tavan mukaan talon nimen eli Kukkosen (Holappa‐suvun tietokanta 2003).
ellauri162.html on line 264: Marcel Aymé, né le 29 mars 1902 à Joigny et mort le 14 octobre 1967 chez lui, rue Norvins dans le 18e arrondissement de Paris, est un écrivain, dramaturge, nouvelliste, scénariste et essayiste français. Écrivain prolifique, il a laissé deux essais, dix-sept romans, plusieurs dizaines de nouvelles, une dizaine de pièces de théâtre, plus de cent soixante articles et des contes. Avec ces écrits il fournit une « étude sociale », avec un vocabulaire précis pour chaque type humain. Son langage mêle les différents registres : argot, patois régional franc-comtois, soutenu et anglais phonétiquement francisé. Très attaqué par la critique, y compris pour ses textes les plus inoffensifs comme Les Contes du chat perché4, il doit l'essentiel de son succès au public. Il a également écrit de nombreux scénarios et traduit des auteurs américains egalement simpletons: Arthur Miller (Les Sorcières de Salem), Tennessee Williams (La Nuit de l'iguane).
ellauri162.html on line 268: Que peuvent donc avoir de commun les écrivains Marcel Camus, Marcel Aymé, Jean-Paul Sartre, Simone de Beauvoir, Louis Aragon, Jacques Prévert, Georges Bernanos, Aimé Césaire, Bernard Clavel, Guy de Maupassant, Georges Sand, les peintres Claude Monet, Gustave Courbet, Honoré Daumier, les compositeurs Hector Berlioz, Maurice Ravel, les politiciens Philippe Seguin (de droite), Jack Ralite (de gauche), le syndicaliste Edmond Maire, le philosophe Jacques Bouveresse, les chanteurs et poètes Georges Brassens, Léo Ferré, l'acteur et humoriste Bourvil, les actrices Catherine Deneuve, Claudia Cardinale, Brigitte Bardot, la chanteuse Mylène Farmer, la madame Miss France Geneviève de Fontenay, les prix Nobel de physique Pierre et Marie Curie, le médecin humanitaire Anne-Marie Gouvet, la chercheuse spécialiste des cancers professionnels Annie Thiebaud-Mony, ou tout récemment le dessinateur de bandes dessinées Tardy… ?
ellauri162.html on line 377: Et l'obscur Ennemi qui nous ronge le cœur ja hämärä vihollinen joka järsii sydäntä
ellauri162.html on line 451: "Lopullisen lopun tiedostaminen antaa näkökulman, merkityxen ja jopa toivoa. Se antaa meidän paradoxaalisesti ottaa etäisyyttä jokapäiväisiin huoliimme ja elää täydemmin tässä hetkessä." Tämä myöntää Andrew Pontzenkin: "Maailman loppuminen saa minut hetkexi surullisexi", hän sanoo. "Sitten alan hyvin nopeasti murehtia globaaleja ongelmia joita apinalla on tällä hetkellä. Ajattelen että jotain rajaa. Olemme nyt paljon pahemmassa jamassa kuin universumin lämpökuolema. Se lohduttaa."
ellauri162.html on line 482: Hän olisi ehkä hyväksynyt noiden marionettien toisilleen lausumat pitkäpiimäiset höpötykset, jotka jäivät ilmaan roikkumaan, hän olisi ehkä hyväksynyt jopa lukuisat hävyttömät lainat Homerokselta, Theokritokselta, Enniukselta ja Lucretiukselta sekä Macrobiuksen ilmiantaman suoranaisen varkauden Aineiaan toisessa laulussa, joka on melkein sanatarkka jäljennös eräästä Pisandroksen runosepitteestä, hän olisi kenties voinut sulattaa noiden sekalaisten luritusten sanoin kuvaamattoman onttouden - sillä se mikä varsinaisesti nosti hänen karvansa pystyyn, oli Vergiliuksen heksametrisäkeiden rakenne: ne kumisivat kuin läkkipelti tai tyhjät peltikanisterit, paukuttivat litramitalla annosteltuja sanojaan prikulleen niin kuin pikkutarkan ja puisevan prosodian järkkymättömät säännöt vaativat, häntä häiritsi noiden kalkattavien. tosikkomaisten säkeiden tekstuuri, niiden juhlallisen virallinen ilme ja halpamaisen harras kieliopin kunnioitus,; nuo säkeet, jotka horjumaton kesuura mekaanisesti pilkkoi kahtia ja jotka päättyivät aina samoin daktyylin ja spondeen kirskuvaan yhteenottoon.
ellauri162.html on line 598: Als ob
ellauri162.html on line 663: Since loss of my pluripotence, I have mainly been dealing on European casual wear for more than 20 years. So I have experience also dealing with many shops in Japan. I have gotten much knowledge of the fashion industry, through experience of production management, wholesale and sales positions. In addition, I am glad to have made many acquaintances through the job.
ellauri162.html on line 687: Selon le R.P. Charles Louis Richard, « On compte jusqu´à treize conciles généraux, dix-huit papes, cent cinquante conciles provinciaux, et plus de trois cents synodes, tant de France que des autres royaumes, qui ont ordonné aux clercs de porter l´habit long ». Le concile de Trente en 1542 réaffirme simplement l´obligation, sous peine de sanction, pour tout clerc, de porter un habit qui soit digne et distinct de celui des laïcs.
ellauri162.html on line 696: The Church recognizes that the lack of workers union contributed to an unjust situation where many work in conditions little better than slavery. One solution proposed by socialists was to eliminate private property altogether. Pope Leo XIII dismisses this solution because "every man has by nature the right to possess property as his own." He also notes that "the impelling reason and motive of his work is to obtain property." Instead of helping the working class, the elimination of private property would only hurt those it was intended to benefit.
ellauri162.html on line 700: People have become accustomed to working for their own needs. Working enables people to earn an honorable livelihood, but using employees as mere objects is wrong. Workers and the rich are dependent upon each other. The worker ought to complete the tasks that they freely agree to, never destroy an employer´s property, never use violence for their cause, never take part in riots or disorder, and not associate with those who encourage them to act unethically. (As Pope John Paul II would later emphasize in Laborem Exercens, work ought to be seen as a privileged expression of human activity. Work, including cultural production, is an example of human creation in the image of the creator.)
ellauri162.html on line 708: It is important to remember that we were not created for this world, but rather for everlasting life with God. Riches should be viewed as an obstacle for eternal happiness, and that they do not bring freedom. With this in mind, associations of workers and employers ought to do what is best for the body, soul, and property of all involved.
ellauri162.html on line 715: Problème insoluble: rétablir le Pauvre dans son droit, sans l'établir dans la puissance. Et s'il arrivait, par impossible, qu'une dictature impitoyable, servie par une armée de fonctionnaires, d'experts, de statisticiens, s'appuyant eux mêmes sur des millions de mouchards et de gendarmes, réussissait à tenir en respect, sur tous les points du monde à la fois, les intelligences carnassières, les bêtes féroces et rusées, pour gain, race d'hommes qui vit de l'homme car sa perpétuelle convoitise de l'argent n'est sans doute que la forme hypocrite, ou peut-être inconsciente de l'horrible, de l'inavouable faim qui la dévore - le dégoût viendrait vite de l'aurea mediocritas ainsi érigée en règle universelle, et l'on verrait refleurir partout les pauvretés volontaires, ainsi qu'un nouveau printemps. Aucune société n'aura raison du Pauvre. Les uns vivent de la sottise d'autrui, de sa vanité, de ses vices. Le Pauvre, lui, vit de la charité. Quel mot sublime!
ellauri162.html on line 762: Richard Dawkins does not make the head of our list. Since this may disappoint some of our readers. we have, after our ranking, also ordered the atheists on our list by the number of Google hits that their names obtain.
ellauri162.html on line 829: Scienceblogs appears to have a problem keeping and attracting talented writers. According to PZ Myers, Scienceblogs has "been facing a steady erosion of talent". In 2010, the Christian apologetic website True Free Thinker wrote a quite pointed and accurate criticism of PZ Myers Pharyngula blog indicating that PZ Myers' blog posts often lack substance. Pharyngula is widely acclaimed in the liberal media due to its embrace of evolutionary pseudoscience which liberals irrationally embrace (see: Evolution, Liberalism, Atheism, and Irrationality). Myers' blog is also listed by the science journal Nature, which also embraces evolutionary pseudoscience, as the best blog by a scientist. Pharyngula is known for its sarcastic and often specious criticism of creation science and intelligent design theory, as well as regular postings of photos of cephalopods (often with vulgarly sexual connotations both subtle and blatant). As Singer said, sexual organs are the best indicators of the soul.
ellauri162.html on line 831: PZ Myers' caustic blog post on the death of Robin Williams See: PZ Myers on the death of Robin Williams (n.h.). Myers was angry because he felt that the news of Robins Williams death was crowding out the news story of the African-American Michael Brown who was shot by a police officer (a race riot subsequently ensued).
ellauri162.html on line 833: obin">Robin McLaurin Williams (July 21, 1951 – August 11, 2014) was an American actor and comedian. Williams was raised and sometimes identified himself as an Episcopalian. He described his denomination in a comedy routine as "I have that idea of Chicago protestant, Episcopal—Catholic light: half the religion, half the guilt." He also described himself as an "honorary Jew", and on Israel's 60th Independence Day in 2008, he appeared in Times Square, along with several other celebrities to wish Israel a happy birthday.
ellauri162.html on line 834: Williams was found dead in his home in Paradise Cay, California on August 11, 2014. The final autopsy report, released in November 2014, concluded that Williams' death was a suicide resulting from "asphyxia due to hanging". Sen päästä löytyi israelilaisia levyn kappaleita. President Barack Obama released a statement upon Williams's death: Robin Williams was an airman, a doctor, a genie, a nanny, a president, a professor, a bangarang Peter Pan, and everything in between. Se oli Jönsyäkin nuorempi, ja on nyt jo varmaan ihan homeessa.
ellauri163.html on line 48: He wrote the drama Got fun nekome (God of Vengeance) in the winter of 1906 in Cologne, Germany. It is about a Jewish brothel owner who attempts to become respectable by commissioning a Torah scroll and marrying off his daughter to a yeshiva student. Set in a brothel, the play includes Jewish prostitutes and a lesbian scene. I. L. Peretz famously said of the play after reading it: "Burn it, Asch, burn it!" Instead, Asch went to Berlin to pitch it to director Max Reinhardt and actor Rudolph Schildkraut, who produced it at the Deutsches Theater. God of Vengeance opened on March 19, 1907 and ran for six months, and soon was translated and performed in a dozen European languages. It was first brought to New York by David Kessler in 1907. The audience mostly came for Kessler, and they booed the rest of the cast. The New York production sparked a major press war between local Yiddish papers, led by the Orthodox Tageplatt and even the secular Forverts. Orthodox papers referred to God of Vengeance as "filthy," "immoral," and "indecent," while radical papers described it as "moral," "artistic," and "beautiful". Some of the more provocative scenes in the production were changed, but it wasn't enough for the Orthodox papers. Even Yiddish intellectuals and the play's supporters had problems with the play's inauthentic portrayal of Jewish tradition, especially Yankl's use of the Torah, which they said Asch seemed to be using mostly for cheap effects; they also expressed concern over how it might stigmatize Jewish people who already faced much anti-Semitism. The association with Jews and sex work was a popular stereotype at the time. Other intellectuals criticized the writing itself, claiming that the second act was beautifully written but the first and third acts failed to support it.
ellauri163.html on line 50: God of Vengeance was published in English-language translation in 1918. In 1922, it was staged in New York City at the Provincetown Theatre in Greenwich Village, and moved to the Apollo Theatre on Broadway on February 19, 1923, with a cast that included the acclaimed Jewish immigrant actor Rudolph Schildkraut. Its run was cut short on March 6, when the entire cast, producer Harry Weinberger, and one of the owners of the theater were indicted for violating the state's Penal Code, and later convicted on charges of obscenity. Weinberger, who was also a prominent attorney, represented the group at the trial. The chief witness against the play was Rabbi Joseph Silberman, who declared in an interview with Forverts: "This play libels the Jewish religion. Even the greatest anti-Semite could not have written such a thing". (You just wait for Philip Roth...) After a protracted battle, the conviction was successfully appealed. In Europe, the play was popular enough to be translated into German, Russian, Polish, Hebrew, Italian, Czech, Romanian and Norwegian. Indecent, the 2015 play written by Paula Vogel, tells of those events and the impact of God of Vengeance. It opened on Broadway at the Cort Theater in April 2017, directed by Rebecca Taichman. Eli ei Asch ihan pasé vielä ole.
ellauri163.html on line 180: Siilo. Genesixen loppuvizeissä Jaakob kutsui poikansa luokseen ja sanoi: »Tulkaa tänne, niin ilmoitan teille, mitä teille tapahtuu tulevina aikoina.»
ellauri163.html on line 181: Tulkaa koolle ja kuunnelkaa, te Jaakobin pojat, kuulkaa isäänne Israelia. Ruuben, sinä olet esikoiseni ja voimani, sinä olet miehuuteni ensimmäinen hedelmä, arvossa korkein, voimilta väkevin. Mutta olet kuin kuohuva puro, siksi et säilytä ensimmäistä sijaasi. Sinä nousit isäsi vuoteelle, häpäisit minun makuusijani.1
ellauri163.html on line 185: Simeon ja Leevi ovat veljekset, väkivaltaisia ovat heidän hankkeensa. Minä en suostu heidän juoniinsa,minun sydämeni ei liity heidän seuraansa. He ovat vihassaan tappaneet miehiä, omin luvin katkoneet sonnien kinnerjänteet. Kirottu olkoon heidän vihansa, sillä se on kiivas, heidän raivonsa, sillä se on julma. Minä sirotan heidät Jaakobin heimojen sekaan, hajotan heidät Israelin joukkoon. Juuda, veljesi ylistävät sinua. Sinun kätesi on iskevä vihollistasi niskaan, sinun isäsi pojat kumartavat sinua. Juuda, sinä nuori leijona, saaliilta olet noussut, poikani. Hän on kyyristynyt, käynyt makuulle kuin leijona, kuin jalopeura. Kuka uskaltaa häntä häiritä? Ei siirry valtikka pois Juudalta, ei käskijän sauva hänen suvultaan. Hänen heimostaan on tuleva se, jolla on valta, häntä kansat tottelevat.
ellauri163.html on line 189: The scepter shall not depart from Judah, Nor the ruler's staff from between his feet, Until Shiloh comes, And to him shall be the obedience of the peoples.
ellauri163.html on line 193: Viiniköynnökseen hän sitoo aasinsa, jaloon köynnökseen aasinsa varsan. Hän pesee viinissä vaatteensa, rypäleiden veressä pukunsa. Hänen silmissään on viinin hehku, hänen hampaissaan maidon valkeus. Sebulon on asuva meren äärellä, hän asettuu rannikolle, missä laivat kulkevat, hänen selkänsä taa jää Sidon. Isaskar on vahvaluinen juhta, joka makaa kuormaansa odottaen. Hän näki asuinsijansa hyväksi ja maansa ihanaksi. Hän painoi olkansa taakan alle, kävi tekemään orjan töitä. Dan on ajava kansansa asiaa yhtenä Israelin heimoista. Dan on oleva käärmeenä tiellä, polulla kyynä, joka puree hevosta vuohiseen, niin että ratsastaja suistuu maahan. Herra, sinulta minä odotan pelastusta! Gadia ahdistavat rosvojen joukot, ja Gad ahdistaa niitä, seuraa niiden kintereillä. Asserin leipä on runsas, hän tarjoaa kuninkaiden herkkuja. Naftali on vapaana juokseva kauris, kauniita ovat hänen vasansa. Joosef on hedelmäpuu, nuori hedelmäpuu lähteen äärellä, sen oksat ojentuvat yli muurin. Jousimiehet hätyyttävät häntä, he ampuvat ja ahdistavat häntä, mutta hänen jousensa pysyy jäntevänä ja hänen kätensä ovat nopeat. Tämän saa aikaan Jaakobin Väkevä, hän, jonka nimi on Paimen, Israelin Kallio, isäsi Jumala, joka on auttava sinua, Kaikkivaltias, joka siunaa sinua, antaa siunauksia ylhäältä taivaasta
ellauri163.html on line 195: Benjamin on saalistava susi, aamuisin hänellä on aina syötävää, ja iltaisin hän jakaa saalista. Nämä ovat Israelin heimot ja niiden kantaisät, kaikkiaan kaksitoista, ja näin puhui heille heidän isänsä Jaakob, kun hän siunasi heidät. Kullekin heistä hän lausui siunauksen. Tää on just kuin Alexis kiven pilkkaviisussa, joka varmaan on tästä ottanutkin mallia. Lauri poika mezäs häärii.
ellauri163.html on line 197: Sitten Jaakob antoi heille nämä ohjeet: »Minut otetaan pian esi-isieni luo. Haudatkaa minut isieni viereen siihen luolaan, joka on heettiläisen Efronin vainiolla, Makpelan vainiolla, Mamren lähistöllä Kanaaninmaassa. Sen vainion Abraham osti heettiläiseltä Efronilta sukuhaudaksi.
ellauri163.html on line 201: Kun Jaakob oli antanut nämä ohjeet pojilleen, hän paneutui taas vuoteeseen. Hän kuoli, ja hänet otettiin isiensä luo.
ellauri163.html on line 247: The name 'Shiloh' means 'the Bearer of Rest'. 'Shiloh' does not refer to a city or a group. 'Shiloh' is the name of the coming Messiah - the promised Seed, through Whom all the families of the earth would be blessed - the One Who brings rest for the soul and is the fulfilment of all Scripture - Jesus the Messiah - the son of David - the son of Abraham - the father of Isaac - the father of Jacob - the father of Judah and his brother.
ellauri163.html on line 257: Isaac the father of Jacob,
ellauri163.html on line 259: Jacob the father of Judah and his brothers,
ellauri163.html on line 284: Solomon the father of Rehoboam,
ellauri163.html on line 286: Rehoboam the father of Abijah,
ellauri163.html on line 332: Matthan the father of Jacob,
ellauri163.html on line 334: and Jacob the father of Joseph, the husband of Mary, and Mary was the mother of Jesus who is called the Messiah.
ellauri163.html on line 371: G-d did not always promise that there would always be a king (let alone a king from the tribe of Judah). In Genesis 49 Jacob is blessing the tribes and says the scepter will not depart the tribe of Judah. This is long before Moses, let alone the first Temple -- not to mention the hundreds of years then before the second Temple.
ellauri163.html on line 375: Just read the bible chronoholically and you'll see that there were hundreds of years after Jacob's statement before the first king. Then there were Kings of Judah. Then there was the civil war and the kingdoms split.
ellauri163.html on line 385: BTW from Genesis 49 when Jacob makes this statement there were 400 years of slavery in Egypt, a few more hundred years when we had the Judges and the Phillistines before we had ANY king from the line of Judah sitting on a throne.
ellauri163.html on line 386: So hundreds of years AFTER Jacob's pronouncement = no king of Judah
ellauri163.html on line 391: Jacob was fortelling the fate of his sons and their heirs. He stated that the throne would belong to the tribe of Judah "until Shiloh comes." Belonging to isn't the same as saying there will be an unbroken line of RULING kings until Shiloh comes.
ellauri163.html on line 402: All of the Jewish translations (and commentaries) deal with a future time, the messianic era, during which there will be a king, a direct descendant from King David, sitting on the Davidic throne. The closing phrase of the blessing given to Judah defines the role of the expected future Jewish king, Messiah, in the world. Ultimately, his job will be to gather the nations under the banner of the One G-d of peace. If a gathering of the nations for the sake of peace is the first explicit description of the messianic era, it clearly suggests something that is natural, recognizable, and human.
ellauri163.html on line 419: Ja Herra sanoi hänelle: tämä on se maa, jonka minä Abrahamille, Isaakille ja Jakobille vannoin ja sanoin: minä annan sen sinun siemenelles; sinä näit sen nyt silmilläs, vaan et sinä sinne tule pääsemään. Lällällää.
ellauri163.html on line 421: Und der HERR sprach zu ihm: Dies ist das Land, das ich Abraham, Isaak und Jakob geschworen habe, und gesagt: Ich will es deinem Samen geben. Du hast es mit deinen Augen gesehen, aber du sollst nicht hinübergehen.
ellauri163.html on line 452: Mooseksen isoäidin hauta on Maple Groven hautausmaalla Hoosick Fallsissa. Grandma Moses , syntynyt Anna Maria Robertson Mooses (* 7. Syyskuu 1860 Greenwich Yhdysvaltain valtio New York, † 13 Joulukuu 1961 vuonna Hoosick Falls, New York) oli yhdysvaltalainen taidemaalari, kuvittaja ja edusti naivisti taidetta.
ellauri163.html on line 622: No. 36 ateistilistalla, Philip Pullman (1946) syntyi Norwichissa, Isossa-Britanniassa ja suoritti kolmannen luokan englannin tutkinnon Oxfordin yliopistossa. Hän työskenteli keskiasteen opettajana kirjoittaessaan lastenkirjoja – jo yli 30-vuotiaana – jotka tekisivät hänen maineestaan tunnetun. Hän saavutti kuitenkin todelliset julkkikset vasta julkaisemalla myydyimmän trilogiansa Hänen tummat kankaansa vuosina 1994–2001. Trilogia perustuu löyhästi Miltonin kadonneeseen Paratiisiin – paitsi että saatanahahmo on sankari, kun taas Jumala on roisto (no niinhän se vähän oli Miltonillakin). Ateistit ovat ylistäneet sitä vastalääkkeenä C.S. Lewisin Narnia-sarjalle, jonka Pullman on tuominnut uskonnolliseksi propagandaksi. Hän on suorapuheinen ateistien puolesta Isossa-Britanniassa. Hetkinen, kekä saatanahahmo? Sankarihan on Lyra, josta tulee Eeva kakkoineen? Sekö on se saatana? Ja paha jumalakin on vaan tollanen vanha statisti, niikö Paavi Wojtylä, jota pidettiin paavimobiilissa pystyssä kepillä.
ellauri163.html on line 660: John Perry on Willin isä. Hän on tutkimusmatkailija maailmastamme, joka löysi portaalin Lyran maailmaan ja josta tuli shamaani, joka tunnetaan nimellä Stanislaus Grumman tai Jopari, hänen alkuperäisen nimensä korruptio. John Richard Perry (born 1943) is Henry Waldgrave Stuart Professor of Philosophy Emeritus at Stanford University and Distinguished Professor of Philosophy Emeritus at the University of California, Riverside. He has made significant contributions to philosophy in the fields of philosophy of language, metaphysics, and philosophy of mind. He is known primarily for his work on situation semantics (together with Jon Barwise), reflexivity, indexicality, personal identity, and self-knowledge. Situation Semantics was a huge flop, which became obvious when Barwise died of the cancer of the colon.
ellauri163.html on line 684: Lähellä Bolvangaria, Hotkijan tutkimusasemaa, Lyra löytää hylätyn lapsen, joka on leikattu irti hänen esinahastaan; Gobblerit kokeilevat lapsia katkaisemalla ihmisen ja esinahan välisen siteen, jota kutsutaan "esinahan leikkaamiseksi".
ellauri163.html on line 697: With an 11-year-old hero, Philip Pullman´s new book is a delightful nod to Edmund Spenser´s 'The Faerie Queene'. If Philip Pullman’s Dark Materials trilogy was an obvious nod to John Milton’s Paradise Lost, his new Book Of Dust trilogy takes inspiration from Edmund Spenser’s The Faerie Queene. Though thematically different, both fall within the same literary genre—they are epic poems, long narrative pieces recounting heroic deeds, and if the term could loosely be used to describe works of prose, then La Belle Sauvage, the first in the Book Of Dust trilogy, is one such novel. Spenser’s late-16th century poem, though incomplete, follows the adventures of medieval knights. Our knight is 11-year-old Malcolm Polstead, curious, intelligent, good-natured and clueless, when we first meet him, of the trials that await him. La Belle Sauvage, then, is a companion, or "equel" (a new story that stands alongside his previous trilogy), to His Dark Materials trilogy. Better strike while the iron is hot, as J.K. Rowling did.
ellauri163.html on line 714: Pullman sai tukea eräiltä muilta kristityiltä, erityisesti Robin Williamsilta ja Canterburyn ex-arkkipiispalta (anglikaanisen ehtoollisen hengellinen ex-johtaja), jotka väittivät, että Pullmanin hyökkäykset keskittyvät katolilaisuuden rajoituksiin ja vaaroihin ja sen uskonnon käyttöön muun kristinuskon sortamiseen. Williams suositteli myös Hänen tummia materiaalejaan sisällytettäväksi ja keskusteltavaksi uskonnollisen koulutuksen luokissa ja totesi, että "suurten koulujuhlien näkeminen Pullmanin näytelmien yleisössä Kansallisteatterissa on erittäin rohkaisevaa". Pullman ja Williams osallistuivat kansallisteatterin alustakeskusteluun muutamaa päivää myöhemmin keskustellakseen myytistä, uskonnollisesta kokemuksesta ja sen edustuksesta taiteessa. Vaan kuinkas sitten kävikään! Lue sata paasausta eteenpäin (paasaus 262.
ellauri163.html on line 721: Vox Day has written about atheists being "socially autistic". Asperger´s syndrome (sometimes referred to as "High-Functioning Autism" or "HFA") is an umbrella term used to classify problematic behaviours similar to, but less severe than, those within the lower reaches of the autistic spectrum.
ellauri163.html on line 744: PZ Myers is a New Atheist and New Atheism is a contemporary form of antitheism. Therefore, it is very probable his blog appeals to people who hold to a antitheism perspective. Social science research indicates that antitheists score the highest among atheists when it comes to personality traits such as narcissism, dogmatism, and anger. Furthermore, they scored lowest when it comes to agreeableness and positive relations with others.
ellauri163.html on line 759: “… it is noticeable that people with NPD, do not show a major degree of functioning problems in stress free environment or when they are supported (except that they are perceived as “not pleasant characters” to deal with). However under stress and without support they can become quite dysfunctional in a way not far from what we usually see in Asperger’s syndrome.“
ellauri163.html on line 765: Some of the primary symptoms of Alzheimer´s disease are: memory problems, mood swings, emotional outbursts, brain stem damage which impairs function in the heart, lungs plus causes disruption of various other bodily processes. In irreligious/nonreligious regions, there is a significant amount of Alzheimer´s disease (see: Irreligious/nonreligious geographic regions and Alzheimer´s disease). Irreligion/nonreligious regions have populations with significant problems when it comes to engaging in sedentary behavior (see: Irreligion/nonreligious regions and sedentary behavior). Thing is, gods, like dogs, require more exercise, even genuflection to pick up the turds.
ellauri163.html on line 785: obert-bresson.html">Lähde
ellauri163.html on line 787: Ohjaaja: Robert Bresson. Georges Bernanosin tarinasta muokattu "Mouchette" kuvaa köyhän, tuskin kypsän talonpoikaistytön elämää ja koettelemuksia (jota leikkii sullen, mutta armoitetulta vaikuttava siinä vaiheessa ei-ammattimainen Nadine Nortier), ja on se edelleen upea ja syvästi palkitseva esimerkki Bressonin riisutuista menetelmistä leikata ja lavastaa, ääni ja vuoropuhelu, esitys ja liike.
ellauri163.html on line 866: Émile Durkheim, bien que fils de rabbin, etait agnostique. Il entre à l'École normale supérieure où il est reçu septième à l'agrégation de philosophie en 1882. Par la suite, il enseigne la philosophie aux lycées du Puy (octobre 1882), de Sens (novembre 1882), de Saint-Quentin (février 1884), de Troyes (1885).
ellauri163.html on line 875: All religions divide social life into two spheres, the “sacred” and the “profane.” There is nothing intrinsic about a particular object which makes it sacred. An object becomes sacred only when the community invests it with that meaning.
ellauri163.html on line 883: Now this moral remaking cannot be achieved except by the means of reunions, assemblies, and meetings where the individuals, being closely united to one another, reaffirm in common their common sentiments; hence come ceremonies which do not differ from regular religious ceremonies, either in their object, the results which they produce, or the processes employed to attain these results.
ellauri163.html on line 905: Jumala koetaan myös yksilön viimeiseksi avunantajaksi. Auta miestä mäessä, jumala auttaa mäen alla. Ihminen on Durkheimin käsityksen mukaan olemukseltaan yhteisöllinen, riippuvainen laumastaan ja onneton joutuessaan siitä eroon. Yhteisö on ihmisen henkisen elinvoiman tärkein lähde. Durkheimin mukaan yksilö vahvistuu suorittaessaan ryhmän toisten jäsenten kanssa samaa ryhmää yhdistävän uskonnon palvontamenoja. Esimerkiksi latinan sanan religio kantana on ligare, joka tarkoittaa takaisin sitomista tai yhteenliittämistä. Toinen samankantainen, juutalaisille rakas sana on obligaatio.
ellauri164.html on line 65: Risti alttarilla alemmassa kappelissa on ylösalaisin, koska perinteen mukaan Pyhä Pietari ristiinnaulittiin pää alaspäin. Muttei siihen sattunut siltikään yhtäpaljon kuin Jee-suxeen, koska Pekka oli syntinen. Vankilan seiniltä löytyvät myös Adiatorixin ja Aladobixin graffitit. "Kinkkuviipaleita pitäisi..."
ellauri164.html on line 82: J’avais entrevu la conversion au bien et au bonheur, le salut. Puis-je décrire la vision, l’air de l’enfer ne souffre pas les hymnes ! C’était des millions de créatures charmantes, un suave concert spirituel, la force et la paix, les nobles ambitions, que sais-je ?
ellauri164.html on line 84: Les nobles ambitions !
ellauri164.html on line 88: Tais-toi, mais tais-toi !… C’est la honte, le reproche, ici : Satan qui dit que le feu est ignoble, que ma colère est affreusement sotte. — Assez !… Des erreurs qu’on me souffle, magies, parfums faux, musiques puériles. — Et dire que je tiens la vérité, que je vois la justice : j’ai un jugement sain et arrêté, je suis prêt pour la perfection… Orgueil. — La peau de ma tête se dessèche. Pitié ! Seigneur, j’ai peur. J’ai soif, si soif ! Ah ! l’enfance, l’herbe, la pluie, le lac sur les pierres, le clair de lune quand le clocher sonnait douze… le diable est au clocher, à cette heure. Marie ! Sainte-Vierge !… — Horreur de ma bêtise.
ellauri164.html on line 204: Time’s noblest offspring is the last. Ajan jaloin jälkeläinen on viimeinen.
ellauri164.html on line 232: A pupil of William "Will to Believe" James, whose Essays in Radical Empiricism he edited (1912), Perry became one of the leaders of the New Realism movement. Perry argued for a naturalistic theory of value and a New Realist theory of perception and knowledge. He wrote a celebrated biography of William James, which won the 1936 Pulitzer Prize for Biography or Autobiography, and proceeded to a revision of his critical approach to natural knowledge. An active member among a group of American New Realist philosophers, he elaborated around 1910 the program of new realism. However, he soon dissented from moral and spiritual ontology, and turned to a philosophy of disillusionment. Perry was an advocate of a militant democracy: in his words "total but not totalitarian". Puritanism and Democracy (1944) is a famous wartime attempt to reconcile two fundamental concepts in the origins of modern America. Durkheim oli taas aivan oikeassa: sodan aikana vedetään moraalin korsetinnauhat kireälle.
ellauri164.html on line 246: Remembering Robert M. Veatch, PhD 1939-2020. Bob Veatch from Georgetown loved genealogy and had confirmed a Veatch connection to the Stuart (Stewart among the Scots) dynasty. He was a long-time fan of bluegrass and Bob and his wife Ann were founding members of the Lucketts Bluegrass Foundation in Lucketts, Virginia, location of the world’s longest running bluegrass concert series (45 years strong!). He used to laugh and say that he thought likely he was the only undergraduate at Harvard reading Plato while listening to bluegrass. Bob was a Peace Corps volunteer in Nigeria from 1962-1964.
ellauri164.html on line 252: Black & Veatch is an employee-owned global engineering, procurement, consulting and construction company with a more than 100-year track record of innovation in sustainable infrastructure.
ellauri164.html on line 374: For readers unfamiliar with the culture context of France between the two wars, it might be helpful to first watch Robert Bresson's movie of the same name which has been hailed as a masterpiece by such diverse critics as Ingmar Bergman and Jean-Luc Godard. I read the book first. After seeing the movie, I read the book a second time and got much more out of it. As Canadian and a native speaker of French, I can assure any Anglophone that the culture of France is at times very murky to the outsider who must at times go to extra efforts to fully enjoy French literature.
ellauri164.html on line 379: I wanted to like this book so much more than I did. I actually found it incredibly difficult to understand. Some of it, I think, was that it was poorly translated. I read a 1962 edition that doesn't even cite a translator -- so many of the sentences were so convoluted as to be utterly obtuse. Poor translation or witless reader? I never could figure out why Mlle Chantal was such an angry bitch and why she insisted on tormenting the priest. What was her secret? Was the priest an alcoholic or just terminally sick? Gay? Why did M le Comte come to hate the priest? These are just some of the basic narrative issues I couldn't figure out. Forget the whole spiritual aspect--much of what the priest mused on and felt was incomprehensible to me as he described it. I can't help wondering if I'd have understood it if I had read it in French. Or maybe I'm just so spiritually challenged (in a God believing, Catholic way) that I can't comprehend it when it's described. All of that said, there were profoundly moving passages here and there, but over all I don't begin to know what I read. It's rather embarrassing actually--I feel so simple! (less)
ellauri164.html on line 386: What makes the saga so compelling is the gentle, uncomplaining way the new priest relates his many failures and humiliations. As his audience we see his kindnesses misunderstood and his simple mistakes turned against him. And yet he is determined to go out and visit all within his parish despite mounting health problems. But does he really like anybody? Except the motorbike chap perhaps.
ellauri164.html on line 457: In 1938, Otto Hahn, Lise Meitner and Fritz Strassmann discovered nuclear fission, for which Hahn received the 1944 Nobel Prize for Chemistry. Nuclear fission was the basis for nuclear reactors and nuclear weapons.
ellauri164.html on line 467: Luumäkeläinen Pertti Pykälä kirjoitti Ilkka Remes nimellä ryssävihaisia rompskuja. Sakari Tuomiojan poika Erkki valitti että kaikki paha Pertin kirjoissa näyttää tulevan Venäjältä. Hoblan Laurén ei voisi olla vähempää eri mieltä. Pariisin Emilyn ukrainalainen ystävä koitti varastaa muotiryysyjä Samaritainelta. Siinä kulki sankohattuisen Emilyn moraalinen raja. Eikä siinä kaikki: Kiovan tyttö mesetti kyrillisillä kirjaimilla! Hyi helkkari! Emily dumppasi sen pikaisesti. Välillä Emily näyttää vanhalta jutkuhaahkalta.
ellauri164.html on line 489: The next major incident in Moses’ life was his encounter with God at the burning bush (Exodus 3—4), where God called Moses to be the savior of His people. Despite his initial excuses and outright request that God send someone else, Moses agreed to obey God. God promised to send Aaron, Moses’ brother, along with him. The rest of the story is fairly well known. Moses and his brother, Aaron, go to Pharaoh in God’s name and demand that he let the people go to worship their God. Pharaoh stubbornly refuses, and ten plagues of God’s judgment fall upon the people and the land, the final plague being the slaying of the firstborn. Prior to this final plague, God commands Moses to institute the Passover, which is commemorative of God’s saving act in redeeming His people from bondage in Egypt.
ellauri164.html on line 493: The rest of the book of Exodus and the entire book of Leviticus take place while the Israelites are encamped at the foot of Sinai. God gives Moses detailed instructions for the building of the tabernacle—a traveling tent of worship that could be assembled and disassembled for easy portability—and for making the utensils for worship, the priestly garb, and the ark of the covenant, symbolic of God’s presence among His people as well as the place where the high priest would perform the annual atonement. God also gives Moses explicit instructions on how God is to be worshiped and guidelines for maintaining purity and holiness among the people. The book of Numbers sees the Israelites move from Sinai to the edge of the Promised Land, but they refuse to go in when ten out of twelve spies bring back a bad report about Israel’s ability to take over the land. God condemns this generation of Jews to die in the wilderness for their disobedience and subjects them to forty years of wandering in the wilderness. By the end of the book of Numbers, the next generation of Israelites is back on the borders of the Promised Land and poised to trust God and take it by faith.
ellauri164.html on line 498: So, now, what can we learn from Moses’ life? Moses’ life is generally broken down into three 40-year periods. The first is his life in the court of Pharaoh. As the adopted son of Pharaoh’s daughter, Moses would have had all the perks and privileges of a prince of Egypt. He was instructed “in all the wisdom of the Egyptians, and he was mighty in his words and deeds” (Acts 7:22). As the plight of the Hebrews began to disturb his soul, Moses took it upon himself to be the savior of his people. As Stephen says before the Jewish ruling council, “[Moses] supposed that his brothers would understand that God was giving them salvation by his hand” (Acts 7:25). From this incident, we learn that Moses was a man of action as well as a man possessed of a hot temper and prone to rash actions. Did God want to save His people? Yes. Did God want to use Moses as His chosen instrument of salvation? Yes. But Moses, whether or not he was truly cognizant of his role in the salvation of the Hebrew people, acted rashly and impetuously. He tried to do in his timing what God wanted done in His timing. The lesson for us is obvious: we must be acutely aware of not only doing God’s will, but doing God’s will in His timing, not ours. As is the case with so many other biblical examples, when we attempt to do God’s will in our timing, we make a bigger mess than originally existed.
ellauri164.html on line 502: Another thing we see from Moses during his time spent in Midian is that, when God finally did call him into service, Moses was resistant. The man of action early in his life, Moses, now 80 years old, became overly timid. When called to speak for God, Moses said he was “slow of speech and tongue” (Exodus 4:10). Some commentators believe that Moses may have had a speech impediment. Perhaps, but then it would be odd for Stephen to say Moses was “mighty in words and deeds” (Acts 7:22). Perhaps Moses just didn’t want to go back into Egypt and fail again. This isn’t an uncommon feeling. How many of us have tried to do something (whether or not it was for God) and failed, and then been hesitant to try again? There are two things Moses seemed to have overlooked. One was the obvious change that had occurred in his own life in the intervening 40 years. The other, and more important, change was that God would be with him. Moses failed at first not so much because he acted impulsively, but because he acted without God. Therefore, the lesson to be learned here is that when you discern a clear call from God, step forward in faith, knowing that God goes with you! Do not be timid, but be strong in the Lord and in the power of his might (Ephesians 6:10).
ellauri164.html on line 538: Why God punished him so severely is somewhat mysterious. St. Basil the Great used it as an object lesson to us all: “If the just man is scarcely saved, where shall the ungodly and sinner appear?” (Preface on the Judgment of God).
ellauri164.html on line 547: WHAT THEN WAS MOSES' SIN? Two circumstances are obvious on the face of the story.
ellauri164.html on line 554: 2. The sins we are least inclined to may nevertheless be the sins which will bring us to the bitterest grief. Every man has his weak side. There are sins to which our natural disposition or the circumstances of our up-bringing lay us peculiarly open; and it is without doubt a good rule to be specially on our guard in relation to these sins. Yet the rule must not be applied too rigidly. When Dumbarton Rock was taken, it was not by assailing the fortifications thrown up to protect its one weak side, but by scaling it at a point where the precipitous height seemed to render defense or guard unnecessary. Job was the most patient of men, yet he sinned through impatience. Peter was courageous, yet he fell through cowardice. Moses was the meekest of men, yet he fell through bitterness of Spirit. We have need to guard well not our weak points only, but the points also at which we deem ourselves to be strong.
ellauri164.html on line 574: The Lord here gave His people unmistakable proof that He who had wrought such a wonderful deliverance for them in bringing them from Egyptian bondage, was the mighty Angel, and not Moses, who was going before them in all their travels, and of whom He had said, "Behold, I send an Angel before thee, to keep thee in the way, and to bring thee into the place which I have prepared. Beware of Him, and obey His voice, provoke Him not; for He will not pardon your transgressions: for My name is in Him." Ex. 23:20, 21.
ellauri164.html on line 577: but God Himself. The Lord had committed to Moses the burden of leading His people, while the mighty Angel went before them in all their journeyings and directed all their travels. Because they were so ready to forget that God was leading them by His Angel, and to ascribe to man that which God's power alone could perform, He had proved them and tested them, to see whether they would obey Him. At every trial they failed. Instead of believing in, and acknowledging, God, who had strewed their path with evidences of His power and signal tokens of His care and love, they distrusted Him and ascribed their leaving Egypt to Moses, charging him as the cause of all their disasters. Moses had borne with their stubbornness with remarkable forbearance. At one time they threatened to stone him.
ellauri164.html on line 597: Honoring God in leadership—as all Christian leaders in every sphere must attempt to do—is a terrifying responsibility. Whether we lead a business, a classroom, a relief organization, a household, or any other organization, we must be careful not to mistake our authority for God’s. What can we do to keep ourselves in obedience to God? Meeting regularly with an accountability (or “peer”) group, praying daily about the tasks of leadership, keeping a weekly Sabbath to rest in God’s presence, and seeking others’ perspective on God’s guidance are methods some leaders employ. Even so, the task of leading firmly while remaining wholly dependent on God is beyond human capability. If the most humble man on the face of the earth (Num. 12:3) could fail in this way, so can we. By God’s grace, even failures as great as Moses’ at Meribah, with disastrous consequences in this life, do not separate us from the ultimate fulfillment of God’s promises. Moses did not enter the Promised Land, yet the New Testament declares him “faithful in all God’s house” and reminds us of the confidence that all in God’s house have in the fulfillment of our redemption in Christ (Heb. 3:2-6).
ellauri164.html on line 607: A fresh exegetical probe is therefore warranted using a hermeneutical strategy whereby a narrative approach is attempted in order to understand Num. 20:1-13 in the light of Exodus 17:1-7. These narrative analogies are part of a distinctive feature in the Hebrew narrative style labelled Type- scene.
ellauri164.html on line 628: Moses was in no mood to deal with this today. Why couldn’t these people let him mourn his sister in peace? Why had God brought them to a dry thirsty land with no water again? Why did these people always blame him? Why didn’t these people bring their problems to God in prayer instead of always complaining to him? Why were there always so many demands on him? Why was it always “Moses, Moses, Moses”?
ellauri164.html on line 637: Moses had always done exactly as God commanded – until now. This time, Moses dishonored God by disobeying His command. Moses sinned.
ellauri164.html on line 641: Numbers 20:12. Despite Moses’ error, water poured from the rock. God still provided abundantly for the children of Israel even though Moses had disobeyed Him. God did not withhold His blessing from His people because of their leader’s sin. God did hold Moses accountable though (Numbers 20:12).
ellauri164.html on line 643: Moses had always done exactly as God commanded – UNTIL NOW. Moses was devastated when God pronounced his judgment (Numbers 20:12). He had obeyed God’s call to go to Egypt to free the Israelites from bondage. God had worked mighty miracles through him.
ellauri164.html on line 647: Now, after 40-years of faithfully serving God with perfect obedience to bring God’s people to the Promised Land, he would not be allowed to enter! Was that fair? Of course it was. Moses knew God was merciful and gracious. Surely God would forgive and relent, if he would only repent. Surely God would forgive one sin, and let him in, after how good he had been.
ellauri164.html on line 650: For 40-years Moses had pronounced judgment without mercy on those who sinned. Whether the sin had been idolatry, misusing God’s name, immorality, or even collecting firewood on the Sabbath, the law had condemned the disobedient to be stoned for even one sin. Now Moses was being judged by the very law he had proclaimed.
ellauri164.html on line 653: Not even Moses could keep the law. God is gracious. Moses was not stoned to death for his disobedience. Wow. God allowed Moses to keep serving Him, and God kept using him to lead His people to the Promised Land.
ellauri164.html on line 673: Most of us have been taught that Moses’s sin was hitting a rock to obtain water when God told him just to speak to it. Others say Moses’s sin was that he took credit for obtaining water from the rock when it was really God who performed the miracle.
ellauri164.html on line 675: However, God did not say either of these actions was the problem, nor did Moses believe these were the problem. In fact, nowhere does the text say Moses’s sin was striking the rock instead of speaking to it or taking credit for the miracle.
ellauri164.html on line 715: If there is any doubt this was Moses’s problem, this verse removes it: “because you broke faith with me in the midst of the people of Israel at the waters of Meribah-kadesh, in the wilderness of Zin, and because you did not treat me as holy in the midst of the people of Israel.” (Deut. 32:51 ESV)
ellauri164.html on line 729: The bottom line is that both he and Aaron disobeyed God. Moreover, the water that rushed out was no longer seen as a gift from God, but was a product of Moses and Aaron. The people were happy; God was not. He said, "You did not trust in me; and you did not honor me as holy" (Num. 20:13). Hence, neither of them would set foot into the Promised Land. Yet, it is important to notice that just as God did not abandon his people when they sinned, he did not abandon Moses and Aaron. But in this one instance, they didn't pass the test. When crunch time came, they didn't trust God. And all of this happened at the waters of Meribah.
ellauri164.html on line 733: In reality, the people who were writing this story knew that Moses did not lead them into the Promised Land. In fact, he had completed his assignment long ago. God had instructed him to lead the people out of Egypt (Ex. 3:10). They were out of Egypt. His job was done. So maybe this wasn't a punishment at all; maybe it was a reward! He was roughly 120 years of age at this point. They all knew that settling into the Promised Land would have its challenges. That land was fully occupied, and many battles were ahead of them. Surely it was time to let Joshua take over. It was time for Moses to rest. Granted, there might have been other ways for God to accomplish this, but the writers of the story chose to tell it like this. The end result is that Moses was free of his responsibility to the people, free to be with God on the mountaintop.
ellauri164.html on line 764: A. Disobedience.
ellauri164.html on line 767: 2. God has always demanded strict obedience to His expressed will.
ellauri164.html on line 785: A. Disobedience is not overlooked by God (Acts 17:30; Hebrews 5:9).
ellauri164.html on line 825: How then do we obtain the mercy of His sacrifice? Is it not by confession and repentance? We must “speak to the Rock.”
ellauri164.html on line 833: What’s the problem?
ellauri164.html on line 851: In allegory, we learn that the disobedient might see heaven – but not enter it.
ellauri164.html on line 858: Obedience. The answer to this is simply obedience. But may I submit that simple obedience requires humility?
ellauri164.html on line 927: The events leading up to and ending in his sin are recorded in Numbers 20:1-13. The children of Israel were bitterly angry about not having enough water, so “they gathered together against Moses and Aaron,” and “contended with Moses.” They cast all the blame on him. “Why have you brought up the assembly of the LORD into this wilderness,” “why have you made us come up out of Egypt, to bring us to this evil place?” This was part of the murmuring that we are strictly charged not to imitate (1Cor. 10:10). Israel blamed Moses and Aaron for all their problems and bitterly complained and grumbled about it. They were so bitter and angry they wished they were dead. In all previous acts of rebellion, Moses had always conducted himself in a holy and godly manner. He had warned Israel that their murmuring was against God and never took it personally before.
ellauri164.html on line 937: There was a second sin that was also committed in that same event. It was not revealed until The Psalmist described it: “it went ill with Moses” because “he spoke rashly with his lips” (Psa 106:33). When we look at what Moses said, we can see exactly how rash he was! “Hear now, ye rebels; shall we bring you forth water out of this rock?” This was a serious lapse in judgment. Moses was not going to bring water out of that rock. So, there was a big problem with that “we.” Hence, first by striking the rock, and second by using a pronoun that elevated them, Moses “believed not in me, to sanctify me in the eyes of the children of Israel.”
ellauri164.html on line 939: Conclusion. Though the water came, Moses was severely punished. He was punished in a way that no amount of repentance could remove. As noted above, the sin was forgiven, but the consequences of the sin could not be. Because Moses had sinned publicly and God wanting Israel to understand His righteousness, He would not relent. “Then I pleaded with the Lord at that time... I pray, let me cross over and see the good land beyond the Jordan, those pleasant mountains, and Lebanon ... the Lord said to me: ‘Enough of that! Speak no more to Me of this matter.’ ... you shall not cross over this Jordan.” (Deut. 3:23-27). There is a lot of important lessons we can learn from Moses. This sin is one of them. Though Moses had fallen short of God’s glory here, God forgave him. Yet the consequences of the sin were deeply distressing. So it was with David, Paul and Job. So will it be with us. We need to hate sin and realize that the consequences can sometimes be severe.
ellauri164.html on line 965: First the comparison: this generation’s complaint about the lack of water is very different from that of the first generation. Although in both cases the people ask rhetorically why they have been brought out of Egypt, in this case, they bitterly object that in ” . . . this wretched place, a place with no grain or figs or vines or pomegranates. There is not even water to drink!” (Num. 20:5). This is a generation that is ready to enter the Land, and is worried that it will not live to do so.
ellauri171.html on line 80: Rebekka oli hedelmätön avioituessaan Iisakin kanssa eikä kyennyt synnyttämään ennen kuin Iisak rukoili hänen puolestaan. Kun Rebekka synnytti kaksoset, hän suosi Jaakobia, nuorempaa, eikä Esauta, esikoista.
ellauri171.html on line 82: Monimutkaisen tempun avulla Rebekka auttoi saamaan kuoleva Iisakin antamaan siunauksensa Jaakobille Eesaun sijasta. Sarahin tavoin hänen toimintansa johti jakautumiseen. Vaikka Rebeka oli uskollinen vaimo ja rakastava äiti, hänen suosimisensa aiheutti ongelmia. Onneksi Jumala voi ottaa virheemme ja tehdä niistä hyvää. Helikopteriäiti. Curling-kapteeni. Rooli raamatullisille äideille. Jatka lukemista alta.
ellauri171.html on line 84: 04 of 20 Rachel: Jaakobin vaimo ja Joosefin äiti
ellauri171.html on line 86: ob-and-rachel.jpg" />
ellauri171.html on line 87: Jacob declares his love for Rachel. Jaakopin kalukukkaro pilkistää Easaulta förbitystä nahkatakista. Luotathan? Aladdin pikemmin kuin Saladdin.
ellauri171.html on line 89: Raakelista tuli Jaakobin vaimo, mutta vasta sen jälkeen, kun hänen isänsä Laban oli pettänyt Jaakobin naimaan ensin Raakelin sisaren Lean. Jaakob suosi Raakelia, koska tämä oli kauniimpi. Leahilla oli heikot silmät, oliko hän näkövammainen? Raakelin pojista tuli kahden Israelin kahdestatoista heimosta päämiehiä. No ei aivan, Joosefin pojilla oli vaikeuksia perinnön kanssa.
ellauri171.html on line 92: Joosefilla oli infiuensseri, sillä hän pelasti Israelin nälänhädän aikana. Benjaminin heimo synnytti apostoli Paavalin, muinaisten aikojen suurimman lähetyssaarnaajan. Raakelin ja Jaakobin välinen rakkaus toimii esimerkkinä aviopareille Jumalan pysyvistä siunauksista. Vittu siinäpä hyvä malli, bigamy. Juhani Aho puolisoineen, ne sisaruxet.
ellauri171.html on line 98: Koko juttu meni näin. Lean kuopuxen Dinahin jälkeen tuli aluxi mahon Raakelin vuoro poikia ja se sai Joosefin ja Benjaminin. (Paizi Ben oli kivun poika kun synnytys oli vaikea. Jaakob vaihtoi nimen nätimmäxi). Laaban koitti pitää Jaakobin palkkalistoilla muze halus yrittäjäxi. Kun Laabanin lampaat jotenkin aina päätyivät Jaakolle, Laabanin pojat alkoivat hermostua James pakkasi kamelinsa, otti kirjavan karjansa ja potkukelkkansa ja livahti vaimoineen ja lapsineen tiehensä. Raakel varasti mukaan isän teltasta Laabanin porukoiden kotijumalat, tai siis jumaluudet tietysti. Laaban lähti perään.
ellauri171.html on line 102: Jaakob kiukustui Laabanin kaivelusta teltan perällä. Olet kaivannut kaikkea mitä omistan. Näytä nyt minulle, mitä löysit sinulle kuuluvan! Aseta se tänne meidän eteen, sukulaisten eteen, kaikkien nähtäväksi. Anna heidän tuomita meidän välillämme! Onko tämä kiitos yli 20 vuoden virheettömästä palvelusta? Tilanteeni oli tämä: päivällä kuumuus ja yöllä kylmä, ja uni pakeni silmistäni. Minulla oli monia lampaattomia öitä. Tämmöistä se oli aina ne 20 vuotta, kun olin kotitaloudessanne. Työskentelin sinulle neljätoista vuotta kahdelle tyttärellesi ja kuusi vuotta laumillesi, ja muutit palkkaani kymmenen kertaa.
ellauri171.html on line 104: Laban vastasi Jaakobille: "Naiset ovat minun tyttäriäni, lapset ovat minun lapsiani, ja lampaat ovat minun laumaani. Kaikki mitä näet on minun. Mutta mitä voin tehdä tänään näille tyttäreilleni tai heidän synnyttämilleen lapsille?
ellauri171.html on line 106: So they made a deal and a pile of stones. Laban called it Jegar Sahadutha, and Jacob called it Galeed. Couldnt agree about the name of a pile of stones. Elisabet or Jezebel? But it was also called Mitzpah (which means “watchtower”). Se oli oikeasti rajapyykki. Korso. Arameaxi ja kaldeaxi, bounos martyrias ja tumulus testis. Reviirien merkintää. Kumpikin kusi omalle puolellensa kummelia. Jatka lukemista alhaalla.
ellauri171.html on line 108: 05 of 20 Leah: Jaakobin vaimoxi petoksella
ellauri171.html on line 113: Leasta tuli Jaakobin vaimo häpeällisen tempun kautta. Jaakob oli työskennellyt seitsemän vuotta voittaakseen Lean nuoremman sisaren Raakelin. Hääyönä hänen isänsä Laban korvasi Lean. Sitten Jaakob työskenteli vielä seitsemän vuotta Raakelin hyväksi
ellauri171.html on line 115: Lea vietti sydäntäsärkevää elämää yrittäessään voittaa Jaakobin rakkauden, mutta Jumala armahti Leaa erityisellä tavalla. Hänen poikansa Juuda johti heimoa, joka synnytti Jeesuksen Kristuksen, maailman Vapahtajan. Lea on symboli ihmisille, jotka yrittävät ansaita Jumalan rakkauden, joka on ehdoton ja vapaasti otettava. Pyhimyxen vanha kunn Pat. Petetty ruma läski vaimo, vielä 1 naisen rooli Raamatussa. Jatka lukemista alta.
ellauri171.html on line 216: Jacques Joseph Tissot (French: [tiso]; 15 October 1836 – 8 August 1902), Anglicized as James Tissot (/ˈtɪsoʊ/), was a French painter and illustrator. He was a successful painter of Paris society before moving to London in 1871. He became famous as a genre painter of fashionably dressed women shown in various scenes of everyday life. He also painted scenes and figures from the Bible.
ellauri171.html on line 409: It was a dangerous thing to do. He might have got away with it with Antipas, who was indolent and indecisive, but Herodias was another matter. She engineered a situation that led to John’s death, silencing him forever. Did Herodias do it alone? Probably not. It is more likely that all three (Antipas, Herodias and Salome) planned the charade beforehand, to provide an excuse for getting rid of John and silencing him. In any case John, already in prison, was quickly beheaded. Another political problem was solved. Were it not for the fact that the gospels recorded this deed, John’s name and the horror of his death would have been lost forever.
ellauri171.html on line 427: The problem was made worse by the fact that the Israelites occupied border territory. If there was an invasion, they might defect to the enemy. This could mean the collapse of the Egyptian Empire. Just like the Ukrainians. So off with them. Wait! Pharaoh did not want to eject them from Egypt – they were too valuable as workers. So he sought to control their numbers by forced labour and by child slaughter. Hmm. Mitähän opetuxia tästäkin tarinasta voisi ottaa?
ellauri171.html on line 504: The young girl Dinah is seized and raped by Shechem. Shechem tries to atone. He falls in love with Dinah and offers to marry her. He also offers compensation to her family. Jacob accepts the young man’s attempt at reconciliation, but his sons do not. They plan to murder Shechem and all the men of the city. Dinah’s brothers massacre the men of the city, including Shechem, and enslave the women and children. Dinah’s fate is unknown.
ellauri171.html on line 506: Dinah was the daughter of Leah, the unloved wife of the tribal leader Jacob. Jacob had always preferred his other wife Rachel, even though Leah seems to have been a loving wife and gave her husband many children.
ellauri171.html on line 513: Women at this time seem to have been relatively free to move around – think of Rachel and Rebecca, who move around in public without any apparent problems.
ellauri171.html on line 526: Jacob is told that his daughter has been defiled. The word used to describe the action implies someone who is impure because they have a skin disease, or have touched something dead and are ritually unclean. It does not mean sinful, but it does mean exclusion from the tribe until cleanness is restored.
ellauri171.html on line 529: Jacob does not send for his sons, but waits for them to come home from the fields. Nothing is said about Jacob’s feelings, or about what he thinks.
ellauri171.html on line 531: Years later, when his son Joseph is apparently killed by wild animals, Jacob’s grief is terrible: he tears his clothes, wails, refuses to be comforted.
ellauri171.html on line 540: an invitation to Jacob’s family to settle permanently in the region, acquire property and intermarry with his own people
ellauri171.html on line 550: The sons of Jacob are not mollified:
ellauri171.html on line 570: Scholars have suggested that the massacre may have been carried out by all the brothers, but the curse Jacob put on them and their tribes in Genesis 49:5-7 is directed at Simeon and Levi alone (joo täähän käytiin läpi Deuteronomian kohdalla, vähän ihmettelenkin mihin Mooses siellä viittasi.)
ellauri171.html on line 576: I will divide them in Jacob,and scatter them in Israel.’
ellauri171.html on line 583: Simeon and Levi murder the Sichemites; Jacob forces Dinah to watch
ellauri171.html on line 588: Who was right? Jacob, or his sons? Jacob is angry, as well he might be. He tells Simeon and Levi they have brought trouble on him. Now everyone will hate them and try to kill them.
ellauri171.html on line 591: The brothers respond: should they have let their sister be treated like a whore? A whore receives financial advantage for sex, and they reproach Jacob for suggesting that the honour of the family can be restored by favours from the people of Shechem. They call Dinah ‘our sister’ rather than ‘your daughter’ – a reproach to their father.
ellauri171.html on line 593: Jacob does not respond. There is really no answer he can give.
ellauri171.html on line 597: Confusing pic. What gives? Ah, this is not Jacob's bad boys revenging on the skinned guys but rather the motivating scene, naughty foreigner kidnapping Dinah, giving cause to the subsequent genocide. Figures. Dinah looks a little heavy for Shechem.
ellauri171.html on line 600: Dinah means ‘she who has been judged and found innocent’. She was the daughter of Jacob and Leah.
ellauri171.html on line 602: Jacob means ‘he who grabs for something’ – either his brother’s heel at the moment of birth, or his brother’s inheritance later on
ellauri171.html on line 623: The Motivating Problem
ellauri171.html on line 629: Verse 2 describes the problem that cascades into tragedy. The events that follow in the chapter would not have occurred if the concubine had not sinned by becoming a prostitute.
ellauri171.html on line 647: The worthless fellows wanted the old man to send out the Levite so that they could engage in sexual activity with him. But the old man refused and offered the crowd of men his virgin daughter and the Levite’s concubine. The old man said, “you may ravish them” and do “whatever you wish.” He granted them permission to engage in sexual relations with the two women. Now it is obvious the men surrounding the old man’s house wanted to engage in sexual activity when the two women were offered. It is also obvious the men described as “worthless fellows” were homosexuals since they wanted sex with the Levite and two women were offered.[1, 2]
ellauri171.html on line 681: Our second lesson is that our sins affect others and potentially lead others to sin. The first sin in this account occurred in the home of the Levite and concubine. The fact that the Levite planned to “speak tenderly to her” (Judges 19:3) in order to win her back, seems to imply that they had quarreled. The most obvious sin is that she committed adultery when she became a prostitute. The initial sin cascaded into the horrific evils in Gibeah and subsequently to the 400 virgins who were taken alive in Jabesh-gilead to be given as wives to the remaining men of Benjamin. Judges 21:25 says, “. . . everyone did what was right in his own eyes.”
ellauri171.html on line 693: Another lesson is that the Levite was supposedly a godly man and priest. The account does not tell us what ultimately happened to him, but Judges 20:4-5 seems to imply that he lied about his actions in order to save himself. Scripture records what appears to be deception. It is not enough for someone to claim to a godly person. It appears that Scripture records he was not fit for the priesthood. Being a pastor or a priest is not a “job” or “vocation.” Some have said that character does not matter. It is what one accomplishes. But Scripture repeatedly demonstrates that God uses righteous ministers! This man’s behavior demonstrated he was not qualified to be a priest.
ellauri171.html on line 742: Ehud murders Eglon at a 19th century commode - but ancient lavatory arrangements were probably similar. Ehud, an Israelite, reluctantly carried tribute to the hated Moabite king Eglon. He did not want to do it, but he knew he had to – Eglon was like a Mafia chieftain, too powerful and too violent to disobey.
ellauri171.html on line 764: ‘Then Jehu wrote them a second letter, saying “If you are on my side, and if you are ready to obey me, take the heads of your master’s sons and come to me at Jezreel tomorrow at this time.”
ellauri171.html on line 950: According to the pantheon, known in Ugarit as 'ilhm (Elohim) or the children of El, supposedly obtained by Philo of Byblos from Sanchuniathon of Berythus (Beirut) the creator was known as Elion, who was the father of the divinities, and in the Greek sources he was married to Beruth (Beirut = the city). This marriage of the divinity with the city would seem to have Biblical parallels too with the stories of the link between Melqart and Tyre; Chemosh and Moab; Tanit and Baal Hammon in Carthage, Yah and Jerusalem.
ellauri171.html on line 964: Canaanite deities such as Baal were represented by figures which were placed in shrines, often on hilltops, or 'high places' surrounded by groves of trees, such as is condemned in the Hebrew Bible, in Hosea (v 13a) which would probably hold the Asherah pole, and standing stones or pillars.
ellauri171.html on line 992: The next time we hear of Jezebel is during the ploy to obtain Naboth’s vineyard for her husband, who is unable to secure the transaction. She sends letters, with the stamp of the king, to the elders in Naboth’s town, commanding them to lie against Naboth, and then stone him. The elders do so, and after Naboth’s death, the vineyard is claimed for Ahab. Few bible commentators acknowledge the bizarre betrayal of Naboth by his neighbors. If, as is suggested, Naboth’s neighbors had known him since birth and patronized him, how could they turn so quickly? Some scholars argue that this incident highlights Jezebel’s keen understanding of Israelite men. It is perhaps, also, one of the impetus for her modern connotation as manipulator-supreme.
ellauri171.html on line 1021: It is not incomprehensible that, whereas Ahab devoted himself to military and foreign affairs, Jezebel acted as his deputy for internal affairs: the Naboth report comes back to her, as if the king’s seal was hers; she has her own “table,” that is her own economic establishment and budget; she has her own “prophets,” probably a religious establishment that she controls. All these point toward an official or semiofficial position that Jezebel held by virtue of her character, her royal origin and connections, her husband’s and later her children’s esteem, and her religious affiliation to the Baal (possibly also Asherah) cult.
ellauri171.html on line 1022: Perhaps she had the status of gebira “queen mother”, or of “co-regent”. At any rate, there is no doubt that the biblical and later accounts distort her portrait for several reasons, among which we can list her monarchic power, deemed unfit in a woman; her reported devotion to the Baal and Asherah cult and her objection to Elijah and other prophets of God; her education and legal know-how (shown in the Naboth affair); and her foreign origin Ultimately, the same passages that disclaim Jezebel as evil, “whoring,” and immoral are witness to her power and the need to curb it.
ellauri171.html on line 1049: Storyline: Jacob's psychopath son Judah believes that his daughter-in-law Tamara 1 has killed two of his sons, and subjugates her so that she is unable to remarry. However, she ultimately tricks Judah into fucking her pregnant himself and therefore secures her place in the family. She gives Judah two more sons. Her story illustrates her loyalty and her willingness to be assertive and unconventional.
ellauri171.html on line 1051: Judah, who has bought her for his firstborn son, Er, loses it, er, I mean loses Er. When he, er, I mean Er dies, Judah gives Tamar to his second son, Onan, who is to act as levir, a surrogate for his dead brother who would beget a son to continue Er’s lineage. (Onan's sin you must be familiar with first hand!) In this way, Tamar too would be assured a place in the family. Onan, however, would make a considerable economic sacrifice. According to inheritance customs, the estate of Judah, who had three sons, would be divided into four equal parts, with the eldest son acquiring one half and the others one fourth each. A child engendered for Er would inherit at least one fourth and possibly one half (as the son of the firstborn). If Er remained childless, then Judah’s estate would be divided into three, with the eldest, most probably Onan, inheriting two thirds. Onan opts to preserve his financial advantage and does coitus interruptus with Tamar, spilling his semen on the ground. For this, God punishes Onan with death, as God had previously punished Er for doing something equally wicked (unfortunately we are not told what, maybe sodomy in the flock).
ellauri171.html on line 1053: Although the readers know that God has killed two of Judah’s sons, Judah does not. This is known as dramatic irony. He suspects that Tamar is a “lethal woman,” a woman whose sexual partners are all doomed to die. So, Judah is afraid to give Tamar to his youngest son, Shelah, the inventor of Shelah quantifiers. So doing, Judah wrongs Tamar. According to Near Eastern custom, known from Middle Assyrian laws, if a man has no son over ten years old, he could perform the Levirate marriage (yibbum) obligation himself; if he does not, the woman is declared a “widow,” free to marry again. Judah, who is perhaps afraid of Tamar’s lethal character, could have set her free. But he does not—he sends her to live as “a widow” in her father’s house. Unlike other widows, she cannot remarry and must stay chaste on pain of death. She is in limbo.
ellauri171.html on line 1061: But there is a greater threat to his honor (aw fuck, stop, you're killing us). Rumor relates that Tamar is pregnant and has obviously been faithless to her obligation to Judah to remain chaste. Judah, as the head of the family, acts swiftly to restore his honor, commanding that she be burnt to death. But Tamar has anticipated this danger. She sends his identifying pledge to him, urging him to recognize that its owner is the father. Realizing what has happened, Judah publicly announces Tamar’s innocence. His cryptic phrase, zadekah mimmeni, is often translated “she is more in the right than I” (Gen 38:26), a recognition not only of her innocence, but also of his wrongdoing in not freeing her or performing the levirate. Another possible translation is “she is innocent—it [the child] is from me.” Judah has now performed the levirate (despite himself) and never cohabits with Tamar again. Once she is pregnant, future sex with a late son’s wife would be incestuous.
ellauri171.html on line 1063: Tamar’s place in the family and Judah’s posterity are secured. She gives birth to twins, Perez and Zerah (Gen 38:29–30; 1 Chr 2:4), thus restoring two sons to Judah, who has lost two. Their birth is reminiscent of the birth of Rebekah’s twin sons, at which Jacob came out holding Esau’s heel (Gen 25:24–26). Perez does him one better. The midwife marks Zerah’s hand with a scarlet cord when it emerges from the womb first, but Perez (whose name means “barrier-breach”) edges his way through. Cuts the queue. From his line would come David. Not surprising.
ellauri171.html on line 1099: Tamara 2 was the beautiful daughter of the great King David and Maacah, a princess from a neighboring kingdom. Her half-brother Amnon became obsessed with her.
ellauri171.html on line 1104: Tamar probably had a marriage arranged for her when she was still a child – this was the usual procedure for royal princesses. But things did not go to plan.
ellauri171.html on line 1105: When Tamar reached puberty her half-brother Amnon, David’s eldest son, developed an unnatural obsession with his young half-sister. He watched her, he waited in places where she passed, he could not get enough of her presence, and above all he wanted to possess her.
ellauri171.html on line 1108: Why not? At that time it would have been a possibility, though not a preferred one. Perhaps the marriage that had been arranged for Tamar was too politically sensitive to upset, or maybe Amnon thought that David would disapprove of his obsession, seeing it as a weakness. After all, a king could not afford to let emotions interfere with politics. Remember Batsheba, haha.
ellauri171.html on line 1115: But Amnon was not used to being refused something he wanted. He must have discussed his obsession with a friend of his, a clever cousin called Jonadab, because this young man came up with a plan. They would lure Tamar into Amnon’s room on the pretext that her half-brother was ill, and once they were alone there Amnon could have what he wanted. Bedrooms in ancient mansions were designed to receive guests/visitors.
ellauri171.html on line 1121: Tamar obeyed her father. She may have had reservations about coming to her brother’s private quarters but she had no choice. Law and custom required her to obey her father, and in any case she would have been escorted by her own servants.
ellauri171.html on line 1125: In a seeming fit of temper he then ordered everyone out of the room, and because he seemed ill and cranky his servants obeyed.
ellauri171.html on line 1135: To cast her out now, a violated woman, was worse than raping her, since it meant the crime continued. She could never marry or have children, never have a normal life. As far as the people around her were concerned, she would be a used object, unwanted, an outcast. Raping is not bad as such if you provide child support.
ellauri171.html on line 1141: Then as she staggered away she tore the front of her richly embroidered outer robe as a sign of her despair. With her hand on her head, the sign of a bereaved woman, she staggered through the palace corridors crying aloud, until she reached the harem quarters of her mother.
ellauri171.html on line 1162: Did the murder of Amnon help Tamar in any way? Probably not. It may have given her some fleeting satisfaction, but as matters stood she was condemned to the life of a childless widow.
ellauri172.html on line 104: Runoilijan oman kertomuksen mukaan hän osasi latinaa, kreikkaa ja hepreaa kuuden vuoden iässä, ja hän oli kääntänyt Platonin Kritonin kirjastosta alle 11-vuotiaana. Runoilijan poika petti isän asian katollisille ja jäi siitä perinnöttömäxi. Nobelisti Szymborska on puolantanut Agrippaa.
ellauri172.html on line 161: Il conte Vittorio Amedeo Alfieri (Asti, 16 gennaio 1749 – Firenze, 8 ottobre 1803) è stato un drammaturgo, poeta, scrittore e autore teatrale italiano. Teatraalinen auktori. Vihtori ja nippu Klaara kotkoja.
ellauri172.html on line 163: «Nella città di Asti, in Piemonte, il 17 gennaio dell'anno 1749, io nacqui di nobili, agiati ed onesti parenti». Così Alfieri presenta se stesso nella Vita scritta da esso, autobiografia stesa, per la maggior parte, intorno al 1790, ma completata solo nel 1803. Alfieri ebbe un'attività letteraria breve ma prolifica e intensa; il suo carattere tormentato, oltre a delineare la sua vita in senso avventuroso, fece di lui un precursore delle inquietudini romantiche.
ellauri172.html on line 165: Come la gran parte dei piemontesi dell'epoca, Vittorio Alfieri ebbe come madrelingua il piemontese. Giacché di nobili origini, apprese dignitosamente il francese e l'italiano, cioè il toscano classico. Compilava piccoli vocabolari. Dopo una giovinezza inquieta ed errabonda, si dedicò con impegno alla lettura e allo studio di Plutarco, Dante, Petrarca, Machiavelli e degli illuministi come Voltaire e Montesquieu: da questi autori ricavò una visione personale razionalista e classicista, convintamente anti-tirannica e in favore di una libertà ideale, al quale unì l'esaltazione del genio individuale tipicamente romantica.
ellauri172.html on line 175: Come scrive nell'autobiografia, era un bambino molto sensibile, a tratti vivace, solitario, insofferente alle regole, descritto dai biografi moderni come tendente alla nevrosi, una condizione che si protrarrà per tutta la vita, causandogli spesso anche disturbi psicosomatici. Soffrirà di frequenti disturbi gastrici per la sua intera esistenza.
ellauri172.html on line 181: Al compimento del ventesimo anno di età, quando, entrando in possesso della sua cospicua eredità, decise di lasciare nuovamente l'Italia. Fallisce intanto un tentativo del cognato di combinargli un matrimonio con una ragazza nobile e ricca, la quale, pur affascinata dal giovane "dai capelli e dalla testa al vento", alla fine farà cadere la sua scelta su un altro giovane dall'indole più tranquilla.
ellauri172.html on line 185: Raggiunse Londra e, nell'inverno del 1771, conobbe Penelope Pitt, moglie del visconte Edward Ligonier, conosciuta nella precedente visita, con la quale instaurò una relazione amorosa.
ellauri172.html on line 194: Nell'ottobre del 1777, mentre terminava la stesura di Virginia, Alfieri conobbe la donna che lo tenne a sé legato per tutto il resto della vita, e che definì come il "degno amore": la principessa Luisa di Stolberg-Gedern, contessa d'Albany, moglie di Carlo Edoardo Stuart, pretendente giacobita al trono di Gran Bretagna, secondo la successione Stuart.
ellauri172.html on line 222: Dopo un breve periodo di altalenanti problemi di salute e attacchi di gotta e artrite, in cui diminuì il cibo per i problemi gastrici ma continuò a lavorare alacramente. il 3 ottobre 1803 si ammalò gravemente di una febbre gastrointestinale, da cui inizialmente sembrò rimettersi. Tuttavia, alcuni giorni dopo, Vittorio Alfieri si spense improvvisamente a Firenze l'8 ottobre 1803 all'età di 54 anni, probabilmente a causa di infarto cardiaco. Alfieri ebbe un malore, riuscendo solo a far chiamare la contessa d'Albany, a cui aveva lasciato i suoi beni per testamento, e poco dopo, seduto sul letto, si accasciò e non riprese più conoscenza. Vänrikki Nappulassa oli paljon samaa kuin 8kk nuoremmassa Goethessa. Vänrikki Nappula ei tosin perustanut Napsusta.
ellauri172.html on line 228: ob_jordaens_the_battle_of_the_centaurs_and_the_lapiths).jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri172.html on line 256: It may be objected, if man does not act from free will, what will happen if the incentives to action are equally balanced, as in the case of Buridan's ass? I am quite ready to admit, that a man placed in the equilibrium described (namely, as perceiving nothing but hunger and thirst, a certain food and a certain drink, each equally distant from him) would die of hunger and thirst. If I am asked, whether such a one should not rather be considered an ass than a man; I answer, that I do not know, neither do I know how a man should be considered, who hangs himself, or how we should consider children, fools, madmen, &c. Hyvä Pentti!
ellauri172.html on line 265: The situation of Buridan's ass was given a mathematical basis in a 1984 paper by American computer scientist Leslie Lamport (LaTex -ladontaskriptikielen kexijä, LOL), in which Lamport presents an argument that, given certain assumptions about continuity in a simple mathematical model of the Buridan's ass problem, there is always some starting condition under which the ass starves to death, no matter what strategy it takes. He points out that just because we do not see people's asses starving to death through indecision, this does not disprove the principle. The persistence of a Buridan's undecided state for the required length of time may just be sufficiently improbable that it has not been observed.
ellauri172.html on line 310: Jean-Marie Guyau, född 28 oktober 1854 i Laval, död 31 mars 1888, var en nästan helt ignorerad fransk filosof.
ellauri172.html on line 314: Bland Guyaus arbeten märks Vers d'un philosope (1881), La morale d'Épicure et ses rapports avec les doctrines contemporaines (1878), La morale anglaise contemporaines (1879), Les problèmes de l'esthètique contemporaine (1884), L'esquisse d'une morale sans obligation ni sanction (1885), en skrift som väckte Friedrich Nietzsches beundran, samt L'irreligion de l'avenir (1887, svensk översättning i urval och sammandrag Framtidens irreligion 1907). Vidare de postuma verken L'art au point de vue sociologique (1889), Éducation et hérédité (1889), samt La genèse de l'idée du temps (1890).
ellauri172.html on line 324: Le second équivalent, nous l’avons trouvé dans la théorie des idées-forces soutenue par un philosophe contemporain : l’idée même de l’action supérieure, comme celle de toute action, est une force tendant à la réaliser. L’idée est même déjà la réalisation commencée de l’action supérieure ; l’obligation n’est, à ce point de vue, que le sentiment de la profonde identité qui existe entre la pensée et l’action ; c’est par cela même le sentiment de l’unité de l’être, de l’unité de la vie. Celui qui ne conforme pas son action à sa plus haute pensée est en lutte avec lui-même, divisé intérieurement. Sur ce point encore l’hédonisme est dépassé ; il ne s’agit pas de calculer des plaisirs, de faire de la comptabilité et de la finalité : il s’agit d’être et de vivre, de se sentir être, de se sentir vivre, d’agir comme on est et comme on vit, de ne pas être une sorte de mensonge en action, mais une vérité en action.
ellauri172.html on line 556: Paha Abbe Reniant antoi paketin öylättejä possuille! On fait ce que on peut! Mais il obéissait au démon dangereux des expériences.
ellauri172.html on line 612: Napsun sisko princesse Pauline Borghese était constamment infidèle et, selon les mémoires de la duchesse d'Abrantès, était capable d'entretenir simultanément trois liaisons. Elle était affligée de problèmes gynécologiques, exacerbés par sa promiscuité bacchanienne, au point qu'un médecin lui conseilla l'application de sangsues à la vulve. Sa santé décline et elle meurt des suites d'un cancer du foie — à Florence, quatre ans après son frère, le 9 juin 1825 âgée de 44 ans, sans descendance.
ellauri172.html on line 635: Quand cet enfant mourut, car il mourut quelques mois après sa naissance, le major eut un chagrin très exalté, un chagrin à folies, et on n’en rit pas dans le régiment. Pour la première fois, l’antipathie dont il était l’objet se tut. On le plaignit beaucoup plus que la mère qui, si elle pleura sa géniture, n’en continua pas moins d’être la Rosalba que nous connaissions tous, cette singulière catin arrosée de pudeur par le Diable, qui avait, malgré ses mœurs, conservé la faculté, qui tenait du prodige, de rougir jusqu’à l’épine dorsale deux cents fois par jour ! Sa beauté ne diminua pas. Elle résistait à toutes les avaries. Et, cependant, la vie qu’elle menait devait faire très vite d’elle ce qu’on appelle entre cavaliers une vieille chabraque, si cette vie de perdition avait duré. »
ellauri172.html on line 666: Le major Ydow tomba dans une de ces rages qui déshonorent le caractère d’un homme, et cribla la Pudica d’injures ignobles, d’injures de cocher. Je crus qu’il la rouerait de coups. Les coups allaient venir, mais un peu plus tard. Il lui reprocha, — en quels termes ! d’être… tout ce qu’elle était. Il fut brutal, abject, révoltant ; et elle, à toute cette fureur, répondit en vraie femme qui n’a plus rien à ménager, qui connaît jusqu’à l’axe l’homme à qui elle s’est accouplée, et qui sait que la bataille éternelle est au fond de cette bauge de la vie à deux. Elle fut moins ignoble, mais plus atroce, plus insultante et plus cruelle dans sa froideur, que lui dans sa colère. Elle fut insolente, ironique, riant du rire hystérique de la haine dans son paroxysme le plus aigu, et répondant au torrent d’injures que le major lui vomissait à la face par de ces mots comme les femmes en trouvent, quand elles veulent nous rendre fous, et qui tombent sur nos violences et dans nos soulèvements comme des grenades à feu dans de la poudre. De tous ces mots outrageants à froid qu’elle aiguisait, celui avec lequel elle le dardait le plus, c’est qu’elle ne l’aimait pas — qu’elle ne l’avait jamais aimé : « Jamais ! jamais ! jamais ! » répétait-elle, avec une furie joyeuse, comme si elle lui eût dansé des entrechats sur le cœur ! — Or, cette idée — qu’elle ne l’avait jamais aimé — était ce qu’il y avait de plus féroce, de plus affolant pour ce fat heureux, pour cet homme dont la beauté avait fait ravage, et qui, derrière son amour pour elle, avait encore sa vanité ! Aussi arriva-t-il une minute où, n’y tenant plus, sous le dard de ce mot, impitoyablement répété, qu’elle ne l’avait jamais aimé, et qu’il ne voulait pas croire, et qu’il repoussait toujours :
ellauri172.html on line 668: « — Et notre enfant ? — objecta-t-il, l’insensé ! comme si c’était une preuve, et comme s’il eût invoqué un souvenir !
ellauri172.html on line 708: Tout à coup, un boute-selle furieux sonna, appelant aux armes. C’était l’ennemi qui nous surprenait et qui avait égorgé au couteau, silencieusement, nos sentinelles. Il fallait sauter à cheval. Je jetai un dernier regard sur ce corps superbe et mutilé, immobilement pâle pour la première fois sous les yeux d’un homme. Mais, avant de partir, je ramassai ce pauvre cœur, qui gisait à terre dans la poussière, et avec lequel ils auraient voulu se poignarder et se déchiqueter, et je l’emportai, ce cœur d’un enfant qu’elle avait dit le mien, dans ma ceinture de hussard. »
ellauri172.html on line 731: Pour elle seule, hélas ! cesse d'être un problème Vaan sille, voi nössö, lakkaa olemasta ongelma,
ellauri172.html on line 751: Il aurait été baptisé en 1014 à Rouen par l'archevêque Robert le Danois, frère du duc Richard II de Normandie. C'est d'abord en tant que Viking dans sa jeunesse, qu'il se rend plusieurs fois en Angleterre, où il va s'intéresser à la foi chrétienne. Elle avait d'ailleurs été introduite dès le ixe siècle en Scandinavie par des missionnaires de divers pays notamment allemands, et principalement le moine saint Anschaire, l'« apôtre du Nord », devenu plus tard évêque de Brême, puis archevêque de Hambourg.
ellauri172.html on line 759: Après avoir soumis le Groenland à son autorité en 1023, Knut lui envoie une ambassade pour lui réclamer la couronne vers 1024-1025, ce qu'il refuse en s'alliant au roi de Suède Anund Jacob, et il lui livre une bataille navale sans vainqueur en 1026 (bataille de l'Helgeå). Cette confrontation eut des conséquences graves pour Olaf, car Knut bloqua le détroit de l’Øresund entre la Scanie et le Danemark et Olaf ne put ramener sa flotte en Norvège. Il dut l'abandonner en Scanie et rentrer par voie de terre et cette perte l'affaiblit.
ellauri172.html on line 763: Le roi Knut II de Danemark impose alors comme roi son fils Sven Knutsson qui promulgue des lois danoises jugées inacceptables par les Norvégiens. Rapidement les nobles menés par Einar Tambarskjelve et les populations découvrent alors a posteriori la sainteté d'Olaf.
ellauri172.html on line 769: St. Olaf appears to be a bilingual town with a significant amount of unique vocabulary (that may be specific to the area and not appearing in standard Norwegian). Rose uses these phrases quite often, to the exasperation of her roommates. Examples include Gerkanenaken (when dog feces turn white), Tutenbobels (buttocks), Ugel and Flugel (a Hide and seek game for adults) and Vanskapkaka (a special "friendship" cake; this word, however, is based on the Swedish word "vänskapskaka", which holds the same meaning). German, Swedish and Norwegian is the basis of the
ellauri172.html on line 806: Paha ateisti Roth tapatti ainoan sikiönsä Margaretilla eikä saanut Bloomin kanssa aikaan muuta kuin lihavia riitoja. Antiteistikin se oli, "I'm exactly the opposite of religious, I'm anti-religious. I find religious people hideous. I hate the religious lies. It's all a big lie. I give a shit about the sheep referred to as believers. When I write, I'm alone. It's filled with fear and loneliness and anxiety—and I never needed religion to save me." Jumala kosti sille, ei tullut Noobelia. Kikkailevaa Philippiä sattui leukaan.
ellauri172.html on line 848: La Duchesse de Langeais, roman d'Honoré de Balzac (1834). Le Vidame de Pamiers (à la fois titre d'archevêque et titre nobiliaire). Il protège la réputation de sa cousine Antoinette de Langeais. Dans Ferragus, il donne de bons conseils à Auguste de Maulincour, dans Le Contrat de mariage, il protège Victurnien d'Esgrignon, et dans Splendeurs et misères des courtisanes, il n'est plus qu'un habitué des salons mondains.
ellauri172.html on line 891: Quatrevingt-treize, roman de Victor Hugo, (1874), Cimourdain prêtre rallié aux jacobins, envoyé en mission en 1793 en Vendée par le Comité de salut public pour combattre les Chouans.
ellauri172.html on line 938: Le Cardinal, roman d'Henry Morton Robinson, 1950
ellauri180.html on line 43: Vampyyrityttöjä kaikkia makuja. Elena Dobrov (kesk.) on Balkanilta.
ellauri180.html on line 53: Executive producers Julie Plec and Kevin Williamson agreed that in the book series, Elena was turned into a vampire too early, which was around page 200 of The Awakening. Elena's transition into a vampire was planned for two years. Plec said: "That felt obviously too soon, and rushed, and we didn’t want to make a show about a teenage girl who instantly becomes a vampire. But we always knew that her journey would take her there eventually". At the second season's conclusion, Elena was nearly turned into a vampire. Dobrev was happy that she wasn't, because she felt "it would have been like she came too soon", and also didn't think it was something Elena or she wanted.
ellauri180.html on line 174: OBJECTIVES: Globally approximately 25% of men are circumcised for religious, cultural, medical, or parental choice reasons. However, controversy surrounds the procedure, and its benefits and risks to health. We review current knowledge of the health benefits and risks associated with male circumcision. METHODS: We have used, where available, previously conducted reviews of the relation between male circumcision and specific outcomes as "benchmarks", and updated them by searching the Medline database for more recent information. RESULTS: There is substantial evidence that circumcision protects males from HIV infection, penile carcinoma, urinary tract infections, and ulcerative sexually transmitted diseases. We could find little scientific evidence of adverse effects on sexual, psychological, or emotional health. Surgical risks associated with circumcision, particularly bleeding, penile injury, and local infection, as well as the consequences of the pain experienced with neonatal circumcision, are valid concerns that require appropriate responses. CONCLUSION: Further analyses of the utility and cost effectiveness of male circumcision as a preventive health measure should, in the light of this information, be research and policy priorities. A decision as to whether to recommend male circumcision in a given society should be based upon an assessment of the risk for and occurrence of the diseases which are associated with the presence of the foreskin, versus the risk of the complications of the procedure. In order for individuals and their families to make an informed decision, they should be provided with the best available evidence regarding the known benefits and risks. And they should also know what God thinks of it.
ellauri180.html on line 191: Furthermore, was it always doctors who performed the procedure in ancient times? Probably not: in biblical times it was the mother who performed the ceremony on the newborn. Gradually mohels took over; men who had the requisite surgical skill and advanced religious knowledge. After prayer, the mohel circumcised the infant and then blessed the child, a practice little changed today (Fig. 4a-d). In ancient Egyptian society, the procedure was performed by a priest with his thumb-nail (often gold-impregnated) and throughout mediaeval times it appears to have been largely kept in the domain of religious men.
ellauri180.html on line 198: By the middle of the 19th century, anaesthesia and antisepsis were rapidly changing surgical practice. The first reported circumcision in the surgical accounts of St Bartholomew's Hospital was in 1865; although this comprised only one of the 417 operations performed that year, it was clearly becoming a more common procedure. Indeed, this was a time when surgical cures were being explored for all ails and in 1878 Curling described circumcision as a cure for impotence in men who also had as associated phimosis. Many other surgeons reported circumcision as being beneficial for a diverse range of sexual problems. Walsham (1903) re-iterates the putative association of phimosis with impotence and suggests that it may also predispose to sterility, priapism, excess masturbation and even venereal disease. Warren (1915) adds epilepsy, nocturnal enuresis, night terrors and precocious sexual unrest' to the list of dangers, and this accepted catalogue of phimotic ills' is extended in American textbooks to include other aspects of sexual erethisms' such as homosexuality.
ellauri180.html on line 201: Neonatal circumcision techniques have evolved in parallel. It is clear from most surgical texts that circumcision of the new-born had become a regular request for the surgeon by the later part of the 19th century. For instance, Jacobsen (1893) warns of the importance of establishing a familial bleeding tendency from the mother before circumcision. He describes the case of four Jewish infants, each descended from a different grandchild of a common ancestress, all of whom died from haemorrhage after circumcision.
ellauri180.html on line 212: Gairdner made the astute observations that the slow period of preputial development corresponded with the age of incontinence. He felt that the prepuce had a protective role and noted that meatal ulceration only occurred in circumcised boys. Recently, a doctor writing anonymously in the BMJ provided an analogy suggesting that the prepuce is to the glans what the eyelid is to the eye.
ellauri180.html on line 214: To date, a more definite function cannot be ascribed to the prepuce, but as an accessible and ready source of fibroblasts, it has become a favourite tissue reservoir for cell-culture biologists and hence basic scientific research.
ellauri180.html on line 224: Literary assaults such as these have served to fuel the debates and even a Medline® search today reveals that in the last year alone, 155 reviews or letters have been published arguing for or against routine circumcision. However, studying the evolution of the medical indications provides us with a pleasing demonstration of how controversy drives scientific enquiry. We have already described how the surgeons of 100 years ago advocated circumcision for a wide variety of conditions, such as impotence, nocturnal enuresis, sterility, excess masturbation, night terrors, epilepsy, etc. There can be no doubt that a large element of surgical self-interest drove these claims. However, most of the contemporary textbooks also included epithelioma (carcinoma) of the penis amidst the morass of complications of phimosis. Although rare, once this observation had been made, it presumably filtered down through the textbooks by rote, rather than scientific study. A few reports had appeared in the early 20th century indicating that carcinoma of the penis was rare in circumcised men, but not until the debate over neonatal circumcision erupted in the medical press in the 1930s that this surgical `mantra' was put to the test. In 1932, the editor of the Lancet challenged Abraham Wolbarst, a New York urologist, to prove his contention (in a previous Lancet editorial), that circumcision prevented penile carcinoma. Wolbarst responded by surveying every skin, cancer and Jewish hospital in the USA, along with 1250 of the largest general hospitals throughout the Union. With this survey, he was able to show that penile cancer virtually never occurred in circumcised men and that the risk related to the timing of the circumcision. Over the years this association has been reaffirmed by many research workers, although general hygiene, demographic and other factors such as human papilloma virus and smoking status are probably just as important. However, Wolbarst established that association through formal scientific enquiry and proponents of the procedure continue to use this as a compelling argument for circumcision at birth.
ellauri180.html on line 226: Almost as an extension to the lack of penile cancer in Jews, Handley reported on the infrequency of carcinoma of the cervix in Jewish women. He suggested that this related to the fact that Jewish men were circumcised. Not surprisingly, this spawned a mass of contradictory studies and over the next 50 years the champions of both camps have sought to establish the importance or irrelevance of circumcision in relation to penile cancer. The pendulum has swung both ways and the current evidence suggests that other factors are probably more important. A similar debate has raged for 50 years over concerns for the risks of urinary tract infections in young boys and currently, any decreased risk associated with circumcision remains tentative but not proven.
ellauri180.html on line 228: However, during the two World Wars, governments became increasingly interested in reducing the risk of venereal disease amongst their soldiers. Clearly, such pathology can have a profound effect on the efficiency of fighting armis. Indeed, in 1947 the Canadian Army found that whereas 52% of their soldiers had foreskins intact, 77% of those treated for venereal disease were uncircumcised. Persuasive arguments to circumcise all conscripts were proposed. Furthermore, it was an age-old observation, and indigenous African healers had promoted circumcision to prevent the transmission of sexually transmitted disease for centuries. As might be expected, the evidence did not withstand further scientific scrutiny and numerous contradictions were provided. However, there has recently been startling evidence that HIV infection is significantly associated with the uncircumcised status. Indeed, one author has recently suggested routine neonatal circumcision on a world-wide scale as a long-term strategy for the control of AIDS: a whole new chapter opens in this ancient debate!
ellauri180.html on line 233: However, with a healthcare budget of $140 million per year in the USA (1990), insurance companies eventually forced closer scrutiny. Following such pressure, the first Task Force of Neonatal Circumcision from the American Academy of Pediatrics (1n 1975) concluded that there was no valid medical indication for this procedure. However, the pro-circumcision lobby was strong and the task force was forced to re-evaluate. In 1989, they conceded that there may be certain advantages to neonatal circumcision, although their recommendations did stop short of advising routine operation. Similar pressures in the UK have now resulted in only certain Health Authorities being prepared to pay for the procedure. These tend to be in regions with large ethnic minorities who otherwise may suffer form back street' circumcisions.
ellauri180.html on line 284: How do you explain the obvious?
ellauri180.html on line 309: Things to note: Bobby looks far away, Lori (or whatever) looks at him. Bobby is up front, Lori stands back. Bobby is fully dressed, Lori shows tits and navel. Bobby is white & has neat white clothes, Lori is WOC & wears dirty neolithic gear. Bobby frowns, Lori smirks like a puppy. Zadaa! By the rivers of Babylon...
ellauri180.html on line 314: So, here we have it: How to write PO without pissing everyone off and doing a horrible job...
ellauri180.html on line 316: It is important to start by trying your hardest to forget anything you think you know about black women and black female identity. As a white person, anything you would know about them you probably learned from media that is not controlled by or monitored by black women themselves. Meaning that it is likely not a good representation of black women at all.
ellauri180.html on line 369: Bobby finally learns about the true nature of Travelers: that he and the others are not actually humans at all, but rather, human-shaped AI silicon dolls created by something called Sonera: the accumulated energy of all positive optimist sentient knowledge and creativity. Contrarily, Great Dane is a rear window dog arisen from Elisa, a dark antithesis of Sonera. Reuniting one last time, Bobby and the Travelers confront Great Dane in a final battle on Third World to begin Hello World's process toward economic liberalism at last.
ellauri180.html on line 375: Robert "Bobby" Pendragon is an everyday athletic junior high school student from (fictional) Stony Brook, Connecticut, located in the greater New York metropolitan area. Bobby is a prisoner of color. Oops sorry my bad he's not, rather he looks a lot like Harry Potter without the spectacles. But his date Lori (whatever) is a WOC. Bobby's Uncle Stop Press reveals that he will train Bobby to become one of the "Travelers": asshole-journeying young warriors from a variety of different planets and cultures. Great Dane threatens to mix them all together like a kid with watercolors until they are all the same shade of shit.
ellauri180.html on line 589: This act of seeking to find comfort in the burnt remains of religious, or at least holy (privately owned), texts, objects, or structures, after having destroyed them fits into the narrative of this sinful world being reduced to darkness. God (not mentioned) has tested these people and they have failed, only returning to religion when they are at their most desperate. That's an F.
ellauri180.html on line 640: Uutistoimisto Hoblosti kaiuttaa lännestä
ellauri180.html on line 642: Hoblan valkovenäläinen "expertti" on yllättävän samannäköinen kuin naapurin kusipää pelle.- Har din bild av Putin som ledare förändrats efter vad som hänt de senaste dagarna?
ellauri181.html on line 41: Taantumusprofessori Soska zekintää Melvilleä, nim. pikku homon vltavaa Moby Dickiä, koska se oli ihaillut Nykissä champixi pyrkivien imigranttien raivopäistä seppoilua. No niin tietysti jenkkipuutiainen. Sexi pyhää aluetta, mitä vittua.
ellauri181.html on line 91: „Ist ja eh wurscht“, könnte man sagen, wie jener Kustode der kleinen Ausstellung in Kafkas Sterbehaus bei Wien. Auf das Kürzel „mos.“ in der Sterbeurkunde hingewiesen, grübelt er vor laufender Kamera, ob Kafka wohl Moslem gewesen sei. Die Religionszugehörigkeit „mosaisch“ ist ihm nicht geläufig. Wer es mit Franz Kafka und Max Brod genau nimmt, muss sie ärgerlich finden.
ellauri181.html on line 154: Purpose: To identify personal values that are robust across cultures and that can help explain diversity and conflict in values.
ellauri181.html on line 164: “Values transcend specific actions and situations. … This feature distinguishes values from norms and attitudes that usually refer to specific actions, objecz, or situations.”
ellauri181.html on line 380: Comparison between two Ipsative measures may be more useful for evaluating traits within an individual, whereas Likert-type scales are more useful for evaluating traits across individuals. That is: at best, ipsative tests can be used for observing direction (but not magnitude) of change per individual.
ellauri181.html on line 410: Thomas HPA on luotettava tapa arvioida henkilön työtoimintatyyliä ja sitä käytetään globaalisti globalisaation tukena.
ellauri181.html on line 477: Brown, A. (2010). How IRT can solve problems of ipsative data (Doctoral dissertation). University of Barcelona, Spain. Retrieved from http://hdl.handle.net/10803/80006. Avainsanat Thomas HPA, Rakennevaliditeetti
ellauri181.html on line 491: 'The four seasons of globalization: How diffusion of new technology shapes human values'
ellauri181.html on line 493: Tutkin siinä suomalaisen arvomaailman kehitystä ja ihmisten teknologiavalintoja suhteessa markkinoiden globalisaatiokehityxeen vuosina 1981 – 2015, jolloin rahamarkkinoiden vapautuminen yhdessä uuden teknologian markkinoilletulon kanssa loivat kuluttajamarkkinoille sosiaalipsykologisesti uusia ilmiöitä.
ellauri181.html on line 495: Markkinoiden globalisaatiokehitys on tuonut uuden teknologian jokaisen ulottuville. Erityisesti tieto- ja viestintäteknologian vaikutus arvoihin voi osoittautua merkittäväxi, koska se muuttaa sosiaalista elämää ja työtapoja sekä fragmentoi yhteisöjä ja mediayleisöjä.
ellauri181.html on line 545: How can we speak of alignment and the potential for mismatch stress without addressing the issues of ethics, virtues and values? We were shocked in the first few years of the 21st century to discover that the global companies that we had trusted, and invested our retirement and life savings with had lied to us. They lied to the public, about earnings. They lied about their value and their investmenz. Many thousands of people lost their life savings. Hundreds of thousands had been duped. Millions had been take advantage of!
ellauri181.html on line 556: Benjamin Franklin was an author, a painter, an inventor, a father, a politician, and the first American Ambassador to France. He invented bifocals, swim flippers, lightening rods, and the Franklin stove. He founded a public library, a hospital, and insurance company and a fire department. He helped write the Declaration of Independence and the U.S. Constitution. He wrote an autobiography in the middle of his life and shortly before his death in his 80's, he completed his memoirs. Franklin was truly a Renaissance man. He was one of the greatest citizens and thinkers the world has ever seen. But Franklin was not always a great or successful man. At the age of 17 he ran away from home in Boston, estranged from his family because of an argument he had with his brother.
ellauri181.html on line 612: But did you know that is not the end of the story? In his memoirs, shortly before his death Franklin was reflecting on the story of his virtues (which he told in his autobiography written mid-life) and he noted that he had come to feel a oneness with each of his 12 virtues. When he thought of the 13th virtue, he realized that he simply was not humble. Franklin had failed at his 13th virtue.
ellauri181.html on line 616: Franklin failed at the 13th virtue, Humility. Why? Was the most difficult virtue on this list the last? Or was there another reason? YES! The answer is obvious and simple. Franklin had not failed at his virtues. He had succeeded at each of his twelve virtues. He failed at a virtue that was not his, a virtue that had been given to him by someone else. Franklin failed at a virtue that he did not value. He failed at doing something someone else valued and suggested to him as a value.
ellauri181.html on line 653: Utahin yliopiston antropologi Kristen Hawkes on tutkinut Paraguayn aché-intiaanien saaliita. Naiset keräävät lähimezistä ruokaa säännöllisesti, ja heidän kokonaisantinsa on punnittuna suurempi kuin miesten. Miehet jakautuvat kahteen ryhmään: elättäjiin ja mahtailijoihin. Elättäjät keräävät perheelle ruokaa tasaisesti. Mahtailijat tavoittelevat suurta mutta epävarmaa saalista. Koska mahtisaalis jaetaan koko heimon kesken, mahtailijat saavat suosiota. Valitettavasti ”uramiehen” oma perhe joutuu huonon saalistusonnen aikoina pärjäämään vähällä. Niinpä viisas nainen hankkii puolisoxi elättäjän mutta pitää mahtailevaa alfaurosta satunnaisena rakastajana. Demokraattisten valtioiden äänestäjät eivät tunnu aina tajuavan näitä rooleja: kansa valizee johtajaxeen testosteronia pulppuavan miehen mutta odottaa sitten, että tämä käyttäytyy säyseästi kuin leikattu kissa. Vanhan tarinan mukaan mies nousi korkeimmalle vuorelle, ui syvimmän meren yli ja ylitti laajimman autiomaan osoittaaxen naiselle rakkautensa. Juu esim Phileas Fogg ja Honkongin kuvernööri juurikin. Nainen jätti miehen, koska tämä ei ollut koskaan kotona. Sosiologi Martha Dobbins tosin letkautti, että varhaisissa ihmisyhteisöissä miehiä ei lähetetty mezästämään sixi, että nämä olivat vahvempia, vaan koska nämä olivat joutilaampia.
ellauri182.html on line 74: Mikage Sakurai (“MEE-ka-gee Sah-KOO-rye”), a young woman in Tokyo, is the protagonist and narrator; the story is told from her first-person perspective. Mikage has recently been a student. By this time, she has a job as an assistant at a cooking school. Ruminating on death and loneliness frequently, Mikage says in the beginning, “nobody beats me in my kitchen.”
ellauri182.html on line 76: Sotaro (“soh-TAH-roh”) is Mikage’s old boyfriend. He is tall, cheerful, and the eldest son of a large family. At one time Mikage loved Sotaro’s “lively frankness,” but his straightforward manners have become “obnoxious.” Sotaro’s aggressive personality bothers Mikage because she “couldn’t keep pace with it.” Sotaro says derogatory things about Yuichi, and informs Mikage that Yuichi has a girlfriend. Sotaro has something in common with Vitali Razumov.
ellauri182.html on line 104: Symbolism appears throughout Yoshimoto’s story. For the protagonist, kitchens symbolize places of contentment, safety, and healing. Mikage claims, “to me a kitchen represents some distant longing engraved on my soul.” When she is despondent, her dreams of kitchens keep her going. She takes to the kitchen and learns cooking as a way of overcoming feelings of meaninglessness and despair; cooking represents her new attitude toward life. Like kitchens and cooking, food also plays a symbolic role in the story. Mikage is constantly presenting her friends with food; her life changes when she takes a job at a cooking school; and the climax of the story occurs when Mikage brings a dish of special food to Yuichi in his secluded hotel room. Eat my shorz.
ellauri182.html on line 113: The Marshall Plan brought Western ideas and a free market economy to what had been an old and traditional culture. in the mid-1980s, Japan has a booming industrial economy, bolstered by its exports of automobiles and electronics to the West. Japanese society has become more materialistic than ever, influenced by its wealth and the consumerism imported from America. Mikage acknowledges this consumerism when she says of her friends, “these people had a taste for buying new things that verged on the unhealthy.” Mikage’s generation has been brought up on television and American culture; she mentions an American sitcom and Disneyland in her narrative. One character in the story is wearing “what is practically the national costume, a two-piece warmup suit,” a style imported from America. In Japan, Yoshimoto’s generation is called the shinjinrui, a generation that has grown up in a wealthy, technological society exposed to American values. Shinjinrui was new breed of humans (used to refer to the post-war generation, who have different ideals and sensibilities). Japan's Generation X.
ellauri182.html on line 118: Specifically, after ordering katsudon (fried pork served over rice), Mikage has a revelation with regard to Yuichi. The katsudon becomes more than just a meal, it is a means to reach out to Yuichi, to relate to him, to acknowledge both Mikage’s and Yuichi’s connectedness as two obese lovers starving under the same night sky.
ellauri182.html on line 120: The importance of food in contemporary Japanese culture mirrors many of the sentiments of Yoshimoto’s book. John Ashburne, in “World Food Japan,” emphasizes that Japan is a nation characterized by its obsession with food.
ellauri182.html on line 173: In 1207, Hōnen's critics at Kōfuku-ji persuaded Emperor Toba II to forbid Hōnen and his teachings after two of Imperial ladies-in-waiting converted to his practices. Hōnen and his followers, among them Shinran, were forced into exile and four of Hōnen's disciples were executed. Shinran was given a lay name, Yoshizane Fujii, by the authorities but called himself Gutoku "Stubble-headed One (nukkapää)" instead and moved to Echigo Province (today Niigata Prefecture).
ellauri182.html on line 187: As in other Pure Land Buddhist schools, Amitābha is a central focus of the Buddhist practice, and Jōdo Shinshū expresses this devotion through a chanting practice called nembutsu, or "Mindfulness of the Buddha [Amida]". The nembutsu is simply reciting the phrase Namu Amida Butsu ("I take refuge in Amitābha Buddha"). Jōdo Shinshū is not the first school of Buddhism to practice the nembutsu but it is interpreted in a new way according to Shinran. The nembutsu becomes understood as an act that expresses gratitude to Amitābha; furthermore, it is evoked in the practitioner through the power of Amida's unobstructed compassion. Therefore, in Shin Buddhism, the nembutsu is not considered a practice, nor does it generate karmic merit. It is simply an affirmation of one's gratitude. Indeed, given that the nembutsu is the Name, when one utters the Name, that is Amitābha calling to the devotee. This is the essence of the Name-that-calls.[7]
ellauri182.html on line 191: Many Pure Land Buddhist schools in the time of Shinran felt that birth in the Pure Land was a literal rebirth that occurred only upon death, and only after certain preliminary rituals. Elaborate rituals were used to guarantee rebirth in the Pure Land, including a common practice wherein the fingers were tied by strings to a painting or image of Amida Buddha. From the perspective of Jōdo Shinshū such rituals actually betray a lack of trust in Amida Buddha, relying on jiriki ("self-power"), rather than the tariki or "other-power" of Amida Buddha. Such rituals also favor those who could afford the time and energy to practice them or possess the necessary ritual objects—another obstacle for lower-class individuals. For Shinran Shonin, who closely followed the thought of the Chinese monk Tan-luan, the Pure Land is synonymous with nirvana.
ellauri182.html on line 205: Juu näinhän se onkin! Uskonto ajaa kaikenlaista puhtautta, intiimi- ja rotuhygieniaa! Pitää housut jalassa ja raja-aidat pystyssä. Kelaa vaikka juutalaisten ruokasääntöjä, tai esinahan poistoa. Se estää juutalaisten sekaantumisen gojimeihin, arjalaisten sekaantumisen paarioihin, estää ukrainalaiset sotkeutumasta natoon, turkkilaisten pääsyn eurosojuziin ym ym. No tietysti. Ei tosiaankaan ole mikään sattuma että puhdas, pyhä, koskematon, neizeellinen on uskontojen ydinsanastoa. Toinen suosikki on maxuvälinesanasto kosto, rangaistus, maxu, lunastus, velka ym. Eli uskonto on kehitetty ruoka- puhtaanapito- ja pornobisnexen sekä verikostotoiminnan valtiollistamiseen yhteisen hygienian nimessä. EAT! FUCK! KILL! on toki ok, kun se tapahtuu isoveljen valvonnassa.
ellauri182.html on line 207: Ihmiset kysyvät myös: Onko Jaappanissa ylenmäärin anaalis-obsessiivisiä tyyppejä? Entä paranoideja?
ellauri182.html on line 248: Talking about one’s problems can be a great way to get something off your chest. While it is okay to admit that you’re having a hard time, as with other “negative” topics, try to not come across as someone who’s just complaining all the time without actually trying to change anything. Girls don't spread legs for whiners.
ellauri182.html on line 311: Ihan lopuxi vielä 1 tuotesijoittelu: Massive heart attack are an English trip hop collective formed in 1988 in Bristol by Robert "3D" Del Naja, Adrian "Tricky" Thaws, Andrew "Mushroom" Vowles and Grant "Daddy G" Marshall. Kuulostaa Roberta Flackin ja Tina Turnerin morfauxelta. Köyhiä neekereitä brittislummikaduilla kuten Bay-suoratoistosarjassa.
ellauri182.html on line 318: Biden ärisi kansakunnan tilapuheessa Putinille ilmeellä, jota ymmärtävät rebublikaanitkin. Sota on siitä hienoa että kiistelevien apinoiden napina hiljenee xenofobisemman viholliskuvan edessä. Kansakunta ryhdistäytyy ja järjestäytyy johtajansa taaxe. Juuri senpä takia "Ukrainan selkkauxen" sotaakäyvät osapuolet yxituumaisesti välttävät verisiä lehtikuvia ja sinkkiarkkuja.
ellauri182.html on line 365: i.e. bridds, djobb, djók, geim, gel, gin, and sjó. Other examples are breik "break", bœti "byte", dóp "dope", greip "grapefruit", lúkk "look", meik "make-up", meil "e-mail", sjampó "shampoo", sjeik "(milk)shake", and teip "tape".
ellauri182.html on line 391: influences from a diminishing world and increasing globalization, and the
ellauri182.html on line 441: Once the choice has been made internally and you begin to change your life prepare yourself to be amazed at the reaction you get from those around you. They probably think you've gone crazy, like me.
ellauri183.html on line 76: Loppuikänsä Bernad opetti luovaa kirjoittamista Vermontissa Benningtonin naisten collegessa. Ann joka oli sentään käynyt Cornellin typed his manuscripz and reviewed his writing. Oliko Berniellä sillä aikaa jimbajambaa coedien hameissa? New York Times tietäisi muttei kerro ilmaisexi. In the book The Natural by Bernard Malamud the main character Roy Hobbs had a very distinct flaw, a flaw that millions of American men and women both have..... an obsession with sex which affected his character and which made him a very unsuccessful man.
ellauri183.html on line 78: His deep belief that one should live morally crashed into his premise that one should live fully. Yep, I bet he did shag his coeds. Janna Malamud Smith is the author of An Absorbing Errand: How Artisz and Crafzmen Make Their Way to Mastery; A Potent Spell: Mother Love and the Power of Fear; and Private Matters: In Defense of the Personal Life. Her titles have been New York Times Notable Boox and A Potent Spell was a Barnes and Noble "Discover Great New Writers" pick. She has written for the New York Times, the Boston Globe, and the Threepenny Review, among other publications. A practicing psychotherapist, she lives with her husband and two children in Massachusetz.
ellauri183.html on line 86: In a 1974 New York Review of Boox essay, Roth took on Malamud, his friend and literary father-figure, criticizing him for creating characters that were suffering Jews, virtuous victims, full of “righteousness and restraint,” lacking their stereotypical “libidinous or aggressive activities.” Though he didn’t use the phrase, Malamud had painted them as Christ-like in their poverty, pain, moral goodness, and quest for redemption. By contrast, the Christian characters, like Frank Alpine, were full of sexual lust and transgressive behavior — the bad goy to Morris Bober’s good Jew. “The Assistant,” Roth wrote, was a book of “stern morality.”
ellauri183.html on line 90: Malamud was stunned. He drafted two letters to Roth, refuting his argumenz, but never sent them, according to a Malamud biography by Philip Davis. Instead, Malamud mailed only a few words to Roth: “It’s your problem.”
ellauri183.html on line 103: And Malamud himself -- still frail from a recent illness -- at first appears an improbable Isaiah. With his tidy demeanor, incessant self-editing ("no, wait, there's a better word . . . ") and deadpan, scrupulous style, he could be the most successful publican in Galilee. He is uneasy with talking about himself ("that kind of stuff, it's not up his alley," says his publicity-hungry "friend" Philip Roth) and seems reluctant to start. He pauses to choose among several pairs of glasses, then sits down carefully, feet flat on the floor, long fingers knitted in his lap. Finally, with the anxious geniality of a brave man settling in for root canals, he says, "Now then, I think we can begin."
ellauri183.html on line 106: "In many ways, I am a real child of the Depression. There was no money around, and until I could support my family, I didn't know what to do with my hands. That's the force of my strength of obligation. I am in many ways a strong-willed man."
ellauri183.html on line 108: Malamud's work is infused with a baleful but robust humor, and the son says his father "has a Swiftian streak in him" which leads to the "kind of acerbic, satirical quality" apparent in "God's Grace."
ellauri183.html on line 109: In Malamud's cosmology, free will and an omnipotent deity coexist because God ("who invented man to perfect himself") has an overall plan "to make man meet his obligations, but in a way he can't tell him about in advance -- to make him use himself best."
ellauri183.html on line 112: He is irritatingly compared to Nobel laureate Isaac Bashevis Singer. "Don't lump me in with Singer. We're very different. I don't go in for the schlemiel interpretation. There's a difference of intent. I am serious. I have not given up the hero -- I simply use heroic qualities in small men like myself. There ought to be more heroes like myself. Idealism has become a strange word."
ellauri183.html on line 130: Simpanssi Gottlob eli "Buz" ei välittänyt vaikka kuulapeli oli järjestetty, kuha se voitti. Järkevää. Calvin Cohn viittilöi Buz Hobbesille: Olemme kahden maailmassa. Buz Calvinille: Ojenna banaani. Kumpihan oli tyhmempi?
ellauri183.html on line 149: Buz kysyi: Mikä on ihminen, isi? Cohn sanoi arvelevansa että ihminen on se joka suhtautuu herkästi ja suojelee elämää ja sivilisaatiota. Buz sanoi että hän oli mieluummin simpanssi. Tai kristitty. Gottlob, Calvin Cohnin poika joka tykkää enemmän pojasta kuin isästä on aika veitikka. Se ei halua Aatami ja Eeva -tarinaa koska siinä on se käärme, kaarmeet ruomivat mahallaan. Se ei halua Kain ja Aabel tarinaa, koska se ei pidä väkivallasta ja verenvuodatuxesta. Väkivalta Uudessa Testamentissa johtuu siitä että he ristiinaulizivat Jeexus Nasaretilaisen. "Ketkä he?" kysyi Cohn valppaasti. "Roomalaiset sotilaat." Cohn taputti Buzia päälaelle. "Kerro minulle se tarina jossa isa katkaisi pienen poikansa kaulan" Buz pyysi. Cohn vastasi suuttuneena: "Olen sanonut jo vaikka kuinka monta kertaa että Abraham ei katkaissut Iisakin kaulaa. Enkeli esti viime tingassa." Kaikki vain osoittivat toisilleen että he rakastivat toisiaan. Iisakille ei jäänyt mitään traumoja. Buz piti onnellisista lopuista. "Jumala on rakkaus", hän sanoi. Cohn ei ollut varma siitä muttei sanonut mitään. Mutta oliko syntipukin murhaaminen muka sivistunut teko, kysyy Buz. Mina olen elain ja olen aina ollut vegetariaani! Syon banaania mutten ime sun penista ennenkuin mennaan naimisiin.
ellauri183.html on line 151: Juutalainen möi arabille tissiliivejä satamäärin ylihinnalla. Juutalainen alkoi ihmetellä mihin se nin paljon tarvizi. Arabi paljasti: leikkaan ne kahtia ja myyn juutalaisille tuplahintaan kipoina. Gottlob pölli Cohnin yarmulkan ja hukkasi sen viidakkoon.
ellauri183.html on line 153: Ortega y Gasset väitti että simpanssit ei muista äitiään. Vitun humanisti. Gottlob ei pitänyt Hozesta. En minäkään. Buzin mielestä elämän tarkoitus on pitää niin hauskaa kuin olla voi ja hypistellä penistä. Cohn ei antanut simpanssin pitää kikkelistä mutta antoi Buzin imuttaa. George kazoi päältä mustasukkiaisena. Eikös joku niistä olis voinut olla narttu, vaikka George? Olis saatu liukkaampi kolmiodraama.
ellauri183.html on line 164: The book is written under a pseudonym, Johannes de silentio, who discusses the biblical story of Abraham's obedient response to God's command to sacrifice his only son, Isaac. Largely on the basis of this story, Abraham has come to be regarded within the Judeo-Christian tradition as the "father of faith". Reflecting on Abraham's willingness to kill his own son therefore provides Kierkegaard with an opportunity to raise difficult questions about the nature, and the value, of Christian faith.
ellauri183.html on line 166: In his lectures on the Book of Genesis in the 16th century, Martin Luther praised Abraham for his uncritical obedience to God – for the "blind faith" exhibited by his refusal to question whether it was right to kill Isaac. In the late 18th century, Immanuel Kant took the opposite view, arguing that Abraham should have reasoned that such an evidently immoral command could not have come from God. For Luther, divine authority trumps any claim on behalf of reason or morality, whereas for Kant there can be nothing higher than the moral law.
ellauri183.html on line 174: However, Kierkegaard's Abraham does not just provide a paradigm of religious faith. If he is an admirable figure in spite of his murderous intentions, this is because he confronz with courage the loss of the person whom he loves most dearly. According to Kierkegaard, Abraham is a hero not by virtue of his obedience to God's command, but because he maintains his relationship to Isaac after giving him up.
ellauri183.html on line 180: When Abraham raises his knife over Isaac's body, this symbolises the fact that every human relationship is haunted by the prospect of death. Love always ends in loss, at least within this life. One response to this existential fact – perhaps the most common response – is to avoid the issue of mortality as much as possible. An alternative response is to face up to the inevitable pain of loss and to relinquish the beloved in advance, so to speak, by giving up hope of enjoying a happy relationship within this lifetime. (This "movement of resignation" is described as "monastic", although it does not literally entail becoming a recluse. It is an internal movement, an adjustment of expectations.) In Kierkegaard's view, this is more noble than the first option, but it is very far from the courage of Abraham, who continues to love Isaac and enjoy his relationship to him in full awareness of the suffering that his death would bring. This aspect of the interpretation of Abraham offered in Fear and Trembling suggesz that, far from being an individualist, Kierkegaard regards human relationships as essential to life.
ellauri183.html on line 210: Entre 1905 y 1907 realizó estudios en Alemania: Leipzig, Núremberg, Colonia, Berlín y, sobre todo, Marburgo. En esta última, se vio influido por el neokantismo de Hermann Cohen y Paul Natorp, entre otros.
ellauri183.html on line 214: En 1916 nació su hijo José Ortega Spottorno, que fue ingeniero agrónomo y fundador del periódico El País. Hei täähän on Espanjan Eljas Erkko, ja sen poika Aatos. Ja samanlaiset "edistysmieliset eli talousliberaalit kannatkin. Oli myötäilevinään La Republicaa mutta oli ize asiassa tyrmistynyt («el artículo donde la Constitución legisla sobre la Iglesia» le parece «de gran improcedencia»).
ellauri183.html on line 225: Etapa objetivista (1902-1914): influido por el neokantismo alemán y por la fenomenología de Husserl, llega a afirmar la primacía de las cosas (y de las ideas) sobre las personas.
ellauri183.html on line 229: Etapa raciovitalista (1923-1955): se considera que Ortega entra en su etapa de madurez, con obras como El tema de nuestro tiempo, Historia como sistema, Ideas y creencias o La rebelión de las masas.
ellauri183.html on line 242: Ortega, en este período de falta de democracia, escribe en La rebelión de las masas que la historia, el progreso, se llevan a cabo por el trabajo de las minorías. Si va a haber una renovación, entonces, esto debe ser hecho por los mejores, que van a ser, sin embargo, reclutados de una manera liberal-democrática. Ortega teme que las masas van a pedirle todo al estado y que este les conceda todo a cambio de obediencia ciega: esto causaría un fracaso para emancipar a las masas. Su visión de la vida es básicamente libertaria con referencias principalmente anarquistas presentes en todos sus escritos. Trae consigo el liberalismo y el socialismo: el liberalismo debe perseguir una emancipación total del individuo (cualquiera que sea la clase a la que pertenezca), el socialismo debe abandonar el estado de estadolatría y terminar persiguiendo un igualitarismo excesivamente extremo.
ellauri183.html on line 244: El advenimiento de las masas al pleno poder social es un hecho que debemos reconocer: provoca una crisis en la Sociedad Europea porque las masas no pueden liderar la sociedad. Esto no significa que puedan elegir a sus propios representantes. El problema es la hiperdemocracia: eso es la emancipación sin asumir la responsabilidad. El fenómeno de la aglomeración se produce durante este período: ciudades llenas, trenes completos, hoteles completos, las masas están en los lugares públicos. Esto no es malo, es una indicación de la civilización, «aunque el fenómeno es lógico, natural, no se puede negar que no ocurrió antes». Esto no se debe a un auge demográfico sino a la masificación de la sociedad (estos individuos preexistían, pero aún no formaban una masa). En todo esto hay un elemento negativo: los mejores (según sus cualidades) son absorbidos por la masa, «los actores son absorbidos por el coro». Cuando Ortega habla de masa no se refiere a la clase obrera, porque «la masa es el hombre promedio». La Masa no es solo un hecho cuantitativo, sino también cualitativo que define una media que tiende hacia abajo. El componente de la masa no se siente como tal y, por lo tanto, se siente con todo a gusto: no se da cuenta de la condición del conformismo en el que se derrumbó.
ellauri183.html on line 258: The nuclear holocaust has come and gone. Only one man survives: paleologist Calvin Cohn, who happened to be safely, deeply underwater at the time. And, after some black-humor-ish conversations with God, Cohn is allowed to live—for a while, at least—and he finds himself on an island a la Robinson Crusoe, with a communicative chimp named Buz (product of chimp-speech experiments) as his only companion. Cohn, son of a rabbi, engages in existential, religious, and Talmudic speculations with the chimp—though he refrains from trying to convert him to Judaism. He must reexamine the basics of social interaction—when Buz gets too physically chummy ("If you had suckled the lad, could you marry him?"), when a friendly gorilla appears and causes jealousies, and, above all, when five more talking chimps appear... including the lisping Mary Madelyn, the object of everyone's sexual attention (including Cohn's).
ellauri183.html on line 317: Born in 1924 in Antwerp to a French-speaking Jewish family, Bromberger escaped the German invasion of Belgium with his parents and two brothers on May 10, 1940. After reaching Paris, then Bordeaux, his family obtained one of the last visas issued by the Portuguese consul Aristides de Sousa Mendes in Bayonne.
ellauri183.html on line 321: Over the years since founding building 20 in 1966-7, he trained many generations of MIT students, teaching alongside such notables as Halle, Noam Chomsky, Thomas Kuhn, and Ken Hale, without being very notable himself. He wrote some shit about questions that nobody read.
ellauri183.html on line 327: Bob May invited the old geezer over to ENS in 2017, a year before he died. Nomppa used to walk him daily round the block, though he had to ask himself why.
ellauri183.html on line 329: Early research in linguistic formal semantics used Partee's system to achieve a wealth of empirical and conceptual results. Later work by Irene Heim, Angelika Kratzer, Tanya Reinhart, Robert May and others built on Partee's work to further reconcile it with the generative approach to syntax. The resulting framework is known as the Heim and Kratzer system, after the authors of the textbook Semantics in Generative Grammar which first codified and popularized it. The Heim and Kratzer system differs from earlier approaches in that it incorporates a level of syntactic representation called logical form which undergoes semantic interpretation. Thus, this system often includes syntactic representations and operations which were introduced by translation rules in Montague's system. However, work by others such as Gerald Gazdar proposed models of the syntax-semantics interface which stayed closer to Montague's, providing a system of interpretation in which denotations could be computed on the basis of surface structures. These approaches live on in frameworks such as categorial grammar and combinatory categorial grammar.
ellauri183.html on line 391: Kostoxi Cohn katkoo Gottlobin äänijänteet ja kaikki chimpit taantuu takas punapyllypaviaaneixi. Gottlob pääsee astumaan Mary Magdalenia monta kertaa peräkkäin. Hyväxi lopuxi Gottlob uhraa Cohnin J-lalle kuin Iisakin. Vegaani George Calvinin yarmulka päässä laulaa sille Kaddishin. Hahaa LOL, loppu hyvä, kaikki hyvin.
ellauri183.html on line 402: The Jewish Learning Group creates plain language how-to guides on Jewish law and custom, traditional prayer texts with transliteration and instruction, and educational audio and video guides. Their innovative products help G-ds chosen people attain the rudimentary knowledge and confidence needed to build, lead, and further their Jewish observance at a comfortable and gradual pace.
ellauri183.html on line 492: Josef Saramago syyllistyi pyhän hengen pilkkaan, samaan anteexiantamattomaan rikoxeen kuin Ananias ja Safira, ja rangaistuxexi kuolikin vaikka ehti kyllä ensin pokata noobelin Portugalin kirkollisten piirien vastalauseista välittämättä.
ellauri183.html on line 497: Uudessa testamentissa on jumalaniskemän lisäxi kaksi muutakin Ananiasta: ylimmäinen pappi Ananias ja sokko Ananias, jolla oli osaltaan vaikutus Paavalin kääntymykseen Jeesuksen seuraajaksi, muttei ketään jonka vaimo on Sua. Sua kohti herrani, sua kohti ain. Tarkoititko sinua? Ananiaan niminen kaupunki on VT:ssä (Nehemiah 11:32) whose name means "protected by God." Or perhaps the meaning of the name Ananiah is: The cloud of the Lord. It is probably the modern Beit Hanina, a small village 3 miles north of Jerusalem.
ellauri183.html on line 508: 2. (Sept. Α᾿νἰα.) A town in the tribe of Benjamin, mentioned between Nob and Hazor as inhabited after the captivity (Ne 11:32). Schwarz (Palest. p. 13,) regards it as the modern Beit Hanina. three miles north of Jerusalem; a small village, tolerably well built of stone, on a rocky ridge, with many olive-trees (Robinson, Res. 3, 68; comp. Tobler, Topog. von Jerus. 2, 414).
ellauri183.html on line 543: Bobov Rebbe Shlita dancing Mitzva Tantz at Wedding
ellauri183.html on line 619: Saramagon mukaan Jeshuan pienet sisarukset olivat: Jakob, Lydia, Joosef jr, Juudas, Simon, Lydia, Justus, Samuel ym mahd muita. 7 poikaa ja 2 tytärtä, Keren-Happukilla pääsi Jopi joholle.
ellauri184.html on line 60: Morales moved in with Mailer during 1951 into an apartment on First Avenue near Second Street in the East Village, and they married in 1954. They had two daughters, Danielle and Elizabeth. After attending a party on Saturday, November 19, 1960, Mailer stabbed Adele twice with a two-and-a-half inch blade that he used to clean his nails, nearly killing her by puncturing her pericardium. He stabbed her once in the chest and once in the back. Adele required emergency surgery but made a quick recovery. Mailer claimed he had stabbed Adele "to relieve her of cancer". He was involuntarily committed to Bellevue Hospital for 17 days. While Adele did not press charges, saying she wanted to protect their daughters, Mailer later pleaded guilty to a reduced charge of assault saying, "I feel I did a lousy, dirty, cowardly thing", and received a suspended sentence of three years' probation. In 1962, the two divorced. In 1997, Adele published a memoir of their marriage entitled The Last Party, which recounted her husband stabbing her at a party and the aftermath. This incident has been a focal point for feminist critics of Mailer, who point to themes of sexual violence in his work.
ellauri184.html on line 72: Bodily urges are fundamental to Mailer's approach to novels and short works. According to his obituary in The Independent, his "relentless machismo seemed out of place in a man who was actually quite small – though perhaps that was where the aggression originated." For Mailer, African-American men reflected a challenge to his own notions of masculinity. His pecker was not much bigger than those of Hemingway and Scott Fitzgerald, about the size of his pen knife. Like many men with a tiny penis he sought comfort with men and women equally. Throughout his work and personal communications, Nuchem repeatedly expresses interest in, includes episodes of or makes references to, bisexuality or homosexuality.
ellauri184.html on line 76: Barbary Shore (1951) was not well received by the critics. It was a surreal parable of Cold War leftist politics set in a Brooklyn rooming-house, and Mailer's most autobiographical novel. His 1955 novel, The Deer Park drew on his experiences working as a screenwriter in Hollywood from 1949 to 1950. It was initially rejected by seven publishers due to its purportedly sexual content before being published by Putnam's. It was not a critical success, but it made the best-seller list, sold over 50,000 copies its first year, and is considered by some critics to be the best Hollywood novel since Nathanael West's The Day of the Locust.
ellauri184.html on line 80: Mailer's fifth novel, Why Are We in Vietnam? was even more experimental in its prose than An American Dream. Published in 1967, the critical reception of WWVN was mostly positive with many critics, like John Aldridge in Harper's, calling the novel a masterpiece and comparing it to Joyce. Mailer's obscene language was criticized by critics such as Granville Hicks writing in the Saturday Review and the anonymous reviewer in Time. Eliot Fremont-Smith calls WWVN "the most original, courageous and provocative novel so far this year" that's likely to be "mistakenly reviled". Other critics, such as Denis Donoghue from the New York Review of Books praised Mailer for his verisimilitude "for the sensory event". Donoghue recalls Josephine Miles' study of the American Sublime, reasoning WWVN's voice and style as the drive behind Mailer's impact.
ellauri184.html on line 95: Notorious philanderer," "egomaniac," "pugnacious" and "pompous" are a few of the milder epitaphs that have been used to describe controversial and larger-than-life (inevitably) Norman Mailer. His New York Times obituary was even titled, "Norman Mailer, Towering Writer With Matching Ego, Dies at 84." Known in the literary world as one of the greatest writers of the twentieth century, Mailer won two Pulitzer Prizes in literature and one National Book Award. He is credited with having pioneered creative nonfiction as a genre, also called New Journalism. During his life he became as famous for his relationships with women as he did for his literary work. He was married six times and fathered eight children. Here is a brief look at some the six wives of Norman Mailer.
ellauri184.html on line 120: According to your question, Jesus probably did not receive a traditional Bar Mitzvah as he was 13 at the time, but he did attain a Bar Mametery after graduating from high school. High school??? Eikös Jeshua ollut amiswiixi?
ellauri184.html on line 148: Naahumin mukaan Jeshualla ei ole mitään suoraa kanavaa isille vaan isi selittää kaiken sille kärsivällisesti rautalangasta. Ex niiden pitänyt olla 1 ja sama heppu? Ei siltä kyllä kuulosta. Nehän on kuin Calvin ja Gottlob, eri lajia.
ellauri184.html on line 235: Religiously the Judean opinion was that Galileans were lax in their observance of proper ritual, and the problem was exacerbated by the distance of Galilee from the temple and the theological leadership, which was focused in Jerusalem.
ellauri184.html on line 250: According to the biblical chronicle, the Tribe of Manasseh was a part of a loose confederation of Israelite tribes from after the conquest of the land by Joshua until the formation of the first Kingdom of Israel in c. 1050 BC. No central government existed, and in times of crisis the people were led by ad hoc leaders known as Judges (see Book of Judges). With the growth of the threat from Palestinian (sorry) Philistine incursions, the Israelite tribes decided to form a strong centralised monarchy to meet the challenge, and the Tribe of Manasseh joined the new kingdom with Saul as the first king. After the death of Saul, all the tribes other than Judah remained loyal to the House of Saul, but after the death of Ish-bosheth, Saul's son who succeeded him to the throne of Israel, the Tribe of Manasseh joined the other northern Israelite tribes in making Judah's king David the king of a re-united Kingdom of Israel. However, on the accession of David's grandson Rehoboam, in c. 930 BC the northern tribes split from the House of David and from Saul's tribe Benjamin to reform Israel as the Northern Kingdom. Manasseh was a member of the Northern Kingdom until the kingdom was conquered by Assyria in c. 723 BC and the population deported. From that time, the Tribe of Manasseh has been counted as one of the ten lost tribes of Israel.
ellauri184.html on line 269: There were important defeats along the way but it is interesting to observe that commanders often escaped repercussions for their militawy incompetence and it was usually the soldiers who bore the blame for defeat. Though a legionawy could theoretically come from any province within the Empire, the requirement of Woman citizenship had consequences for demographics: legionawies were more likely to speak Latin than non-citizen soldiers, they were usually wecwuited from the most heavily Womanized cities and provinces, their citizenship held inherent prestige that afforded them privilege over both civilians and other soldiers, etc. Legions primarily garrisoned in major imperial provinces, such as Syria, Pannonia, and post-War Judaea. With the exception of Egypt, all provinces with at least one legion were required to have a governor with Senator status. Legions primarily consisted of infantry soldiers, with a few cavalry or archers present among their ranks. Roughly 30 legions were active at any given time within the Empire and each consisted of approximately 5400 soldiers and officers, a standing army of ca. 150-300K total, though not all with a weceived Latin pwonunciation.
ellauri184.html on line 275: The ethnic nature of these units led Wome to create many “specialist” cohorts (e.g., dromedary, archery, sling) that worked with combat methods familiar to one or another ethnic group. Though auxiliaries often served in major imperial provinces alongside legionawies, they also served in minor provinces as well. Thus, provinces and regions with a governor of Equestrian status (e.g., Raetia, Noricum, pre-War Judaea) had no legions, but only auxiliaries. Until about 70 CE, many auxiliary soldiers were stationed in their home province; Judaeans were in Judaea, Syrians in Syria, etc. In addition to the Jewish War (66-73 CE), problems with soldiers’ divided loyalties with the Revolt of the Batavi in Germania Inferior (69-70 CE) and the Year of the Four Empewows (68-69 CE) led empewows to actively undermine any remaining ethnic homogeneity in the auxilia, stationing soldiers outside their homeland in increasingly diverse units. Finally, auxiliaries were paid less than legionawies and did not receive all the bonuses granted to legionawies if they were successful in the same battle.
ellauri184.html on line 287: While many biblical scholars assume that soldiers with Woman names must have been Woman citizens, evidence suggests otherwise: one papyrus written 103 CE indicates that some auxiliaries received Womanized names (i.e., tria nomina) shortly after wecwuitment, even before training completed. Because some soldiers changed their name shortly after wecwuitment, the mere act of joining the militawy often obscured soldiers’ ethnic and geographic origins. Benjamin Isaac thus observes a few obvious instances where soldiers from the Decapolis dropped their Semitic birth name to take up a Woman one.
ellauri184.html on line 308: Paizi Robert A. J. Gagnon, Ph.D panee kampoihin tiukasti!
ellauri184.html on line 316: (3) Therefore Jesus did not have a problem with homosexual practice.
ellauri184.html on line 334: Bob luopuu ennemmin vaikka kapun woomalaisuudesta kuin Jeshuan eheydestä. Bob on tosi homofoobinen. Sillä on vielä 12 argumenttia varalla kuin venäläisillä atomipommeja. obgagnon.net/HomosexCenturionStory.htm">Lähde
ellauri184.html on line 355: First, the problem is theological: The apostle Paul clearly marks the beginning of sodomy with the practical theological problem of idolatry. “although they knew God, they did not glorify Him as God, nor were thankful, but became futile in their thoughts...” (Rom. 1:21 ). What was the result? “For this reason God gave them up to vile passions. For even their women exchanged their natural use for what is against nature. LIkewise also the men, leaving the natural use of the woman, burned in their lust for one another, men with men committing what is shameful, and receiving in themselves the penalty of their error which was due” (Rom. 1:26-27 ). In short, a skewed vision of God leads directly to a skewed vision of man and human sexuality.
ellauri184.html on line 357: Second, the fact that it is a theological issue does not prevent it from being a moral one as well. The behavior is sin. “Do you not know that the unrighteous will not inherit the kingdom of God? Do not deceived. Neither formicators, nor idolaters, nor adulterers, nor homosexuals, nor sodomites, nor thieves, nor covetous, nor drunkards, nor revilers, nor extortioners will inherit the kingdom of God” (1 Cor. 6:9-10 ). The word translated “homosexuals” here strictly refers to catamites — the word has the connotation of soft. We would say swish. The other word sodomite refers to the “male” homosexual, the one playing the role of the male. All the ingenuity in the world cannot change what the Bible bluntly states here. As well, consider 1 Tim. 1:10 . “. . . for fornicators, for sodomites . . . and if there is any other thing that is contrary to sound doctrine.” The Old Testament speaks to this as well. See Deut. 23:17-18 , Job 36:14 , Lev. 18:22 . Those guilty of such things are living in a contemptible way, and the Scripture calls them dogs. Poor dogs.
ellauri184.html on line 359: Third, the sin is not an isolated one. Sins come in clusters, cheaper by the dozen. We must understand that sexual sin was not the only problem Sodom had. Consider Ezekiel 16:49 . Her problems included pride, fullness of food, and abundance of idleness. It also involved a neglect of the poor and needy. The standards of God’s law are dear to Him, and the poor are His special concern. It is not possible to have contempt for the former and remain tender toward the latter.
ellauri184.html on line 361: Fourth, the problem is not just to be addressed through a Christian understanding, applied to private lives. Homosexuality is a public problem in the public square, and repentance will bring with it an understanding of the necessity of public reformation. When Josiah cleansed the land, he shut down the sodomite houses near or in the house of the Lord. “Then he tore down the ritual booths of the perverted persons that were in the house of the Lord . . .” (2 Kings 23:7 ; cf. 1 Kings 14:24 ,15:12 ,22:46 ). Unless it results in the bath houses closing, it will not have been a real reformation
ellauri184.html on line 371: Juudaxen se ottaa messiin koska se on pirun komea. Vaikka se on rikas laskukas ja kommari. Vittuako Jeshua välittäisi kelle bublikaanit kerää veroa. Ei kai se mikään nazi ole. Muttei kommarikaan sentään: rikkaiden vika ei ole se että ne kähmivät kokoon pätäkkää, vaan se etteine anna siitä riittävästi charityä. Jeshua on globaalisen kapitalismin profeetta.
ellauri184.html on line 448: Amerikanjuutalaisena Naahum tietää (on tietävinään) että ahneus on paras motivaattori. Jeshuan viinitarhan päiväpalkkavertaus on tosi vituttava. Siinä tulee hyvin ilmi Jeshuan oikeistobias. Se ei tunnusta liittokohtaisia sopimuxia, se peukuttaa paikallista sopimista. Saman tuntipalkan vaatiminen kaikille olisi vaan kateutta. Niin se onkin! Kateus on tasa-arvon tunne, ja uskonnossa on puhe kaikesta muusta kuin tasa-arvosta. Se on monimutkainen himmeli jonka tehtävä on nimenomaan perustella epätasa-arvoa. Hierarkiaa jossa monarkki on ylinnä ja muut rankinsa mukaisella paikalla.
ellauri184.html on line 514: During the late 19th and early 20th centuries, the primary justification for circumcision was to prevent masturbation (???) and intentionally reduce male sexual pleasure, which was believed to cause a wide range of medical problems. Modern proponents say that circumcision reduces the risks of a range of infections and diseases, and confers sexual benefits (???). By contrast, some opponents, particularly of routine neonatal circumcision, question its utility and effectiveness in preventing such diseases, and object to subjecting newborn males, without their consent, to a procedure they consider to have dubious and nonessential benefits, significant risks, and a potentially negative impact on general health and later sexual enjoyment, as well as violating their human rights.
ellauri184.html on line 516: In Classical and Hellenistic civilization, Ancient Greeks and Romans posed great value on the beauty of nature, physical integrity, aesthetics, harmonious bodies and nudity, including the foreskin (see also Ancient Greek art), and were opposed to all forms of genital mutilation, including circumcision—an opposition inherited by the canon and secular legal systems of the Christian West and East that lasted at least through to the Middle Ages, according to Frederick Hodges. Traditional branches of Judaism, Islam, Coptic Christianity, the Ethiopian Orthodox Church, and the Eritrean Orthodox Church still advocate male circumcision as a religious obligation.
ellauri184.html on line 584: Selkeesti on Naahum kirjoittanut tän autobiografisen jumalloizun juutalainen kieli poskessa. Huomasikohan sen goi sukulaiset sen pikku vizejä? Kriitikkoihin kaikki meni täydestä kuin väärä raha. Läppä läppä. Juutalaiset eivät tilaa pelastusmiehistöä vaan reilun erotuomarin joka on niiden puolella.
ellauri184.html on line 631: c) A political twist could be ascribed to each of these issues so as to obtain a capital sentence from the Roman governor. The Sanhedrin took on this task.
ellauri184.html on line 638: If it is correct that the charge of blasphemy was brought forward (i.e., that Jesus claimed to be the eschatologically defined Son of Man, which seems to be the main reason for his execution in Jewish understanding), it would be easy to ascribe a political implication to this charge. This line of political argumentation is most clearly expressed in Luke 23.2: “We found this man perverting our nation, forbidding us to pay taxes to the emperor, and saying that he himself is the Messiah. The use of the death penalty confirms this political charge (crimen laesae maiestatis). Crucifixion as a Roman form of execution was reserved for slaves and peregrines who were involved in insurrections. The subtitle on the cross (ho basileus ton Iudaion, Iesus Nazarenus rex Iudaeorum, INRI), if it is historical, corroborates this particular charge.
ellauri184.html on line 646: Jesus was crucified between two other “robbers”. The original Greek texts speak of lestai (Mt, Mk). Lestes is the Greek translation of the Latin latro. Both terms have a similarly broad semantic meaning. What is important in our context is that latro and lestes denote not only a street robber but also a resistance- and guerilla fighter. It is likely that no one perceived Jesus as a guerilla fighter, but the term lestes is even broader than the English terms robber, bandit, or resistance fighter, it includes terrorist.
ellauri184.html on line 655: The Romans regarded him as a political dissident, or an insurgent – which the word lestes/latro appropriately captured – via the claim that he was King of the Jews, a claim that he never denied. Jesus’s hobo life testified to his calling as a prophet and radical wandering charismatic who constantly transgressed social boundaries. These multi-faceted processes of marginalization that Jesus partly took on voluntarily and partly endured led – in the brutal logic of the time – to his crucifixion as an outsider.
ellauri184.html on line 692: Among the 52 early Christian and Gnostic texts discovered at Nag Hammadi in 1945, one of the most enigmatic is a Valentinian text called the Gospel of Philip. This is one of several “Gnostic” texts which puts a special emphasis on the relationship between Mary Magdalene and Jesus. One of the more obscure sections concerns three Marys who were always with Jesus.
ellauri184.html on line 738: As the eldest son in His family, Jesus had a cultural obligation to care for His mother, and He passed that obligation on to one of His closest friends. John would have certainly obeyed this command. Mary was most likely one of the women in the upper room and was present when the church was established in Jerusalem (Acts 1:12–14). She probably continued to stay with John in Jerusalem until her death. It is only later in John’s life that his writings and church history reveal John left Jerusalem and ministered in other areas. By then he had probably got rid of mamma Maria.
ellauri184.html on line 758: Mutta (sanoo Jeshua) näin jälkeenpäin ajatellen mun tappio oli suuri propagandavoitto optimismille: nyt jäbät ymmärtävät ettei niin pahaa ettei jotain hyvääkin. Tappionkin voi kääntää voitoxi, kun sen oikein ymmärtää. Rakkaus ei ole ase vaan se on voitonsaalis. (Tää ei kyllä ole ihan ortodoxiaa, tässä on Naahumilla juutalainen pukinsorkka piilossa. Leobardi ei pääse täplistään enempää kuin Esa Saarinen taivaan kuningattaresta.)
ellauri184.html on line 779: José Saramago, therefore, gives us his vision of this unknown Jesus while reinterpreting in his sauce some biblical subjects. The result is probably not very canonical since we see a Jesus first educated by the Devil, then discovering sexuality in the arms of Mary Magdalene, a prostitute with whom he falls in love. However, I did not see any desire to satire: on the contrary, we discover a character torn by the codes of the society of his time, the gradual discovery of his identity, and above all, the feeling of being a toy of fate.
ellauri184.html on line 781: The characters in the book are fascinating; my Jesuits friends and I laughed and enjoy this book. There were no doubts in our head by the end of the book. We did not feel like it shook our religion or affected the way we perceived God. This book was after all under fiction so everyone that is easily offended stay away from this book and stop complaining about blasphemy and crying around like little kids. Saramago is a Nobel price winner and foremost a grown man that is entitled to his own opinions. This one of his finest, if not the best, of his book in my opinion, a must read. Of course he is dead by now.
ellauri184.html on line 783: Jesus having sex with Mary Magdalene in the whorehouse without the blessing of marriage. The demon asking Jesus to use a sheep for sexual release. An angel posing as a beggar during the Annunciation scene. The same beggar-angel walking with Mary to Bethlehem provoking jealousy to the doubting Joseph. Three shepherds instead of 3 kings visiting the family in the Bethlehem. Joseph crucified and dying on the cross mistaken as a zealot. Jesus seeing God in the desert. Jesus riding on the boat with the God and the Devil. These are some of the shocking deviations from the story that Saramago imagined and incorporated to come up with an “irreverent, profound, skeptical, funny, heretical, deeply philosophical, provocative and compelling work.” (Source: Harold Robbin who says that this is his favorite work of Saramago. So far, I agree).
ellauri184.html on line 785: This is a bold fearless work and definitely not for the faint of heart. I am not surprised that when this was originally published in 1991, it created lots of controversies with the Catholic Church condemning Jose Saramago for harboring anti-religious vision and his own Portuguese government asking the European Literary Prize to remove this from its shortlist because of the book’s offensive content to religion. Despite this book’s existence, Saramago won the 1998 Nobel Prize for Literature.
ellauri185.html on line 104: Mitzpah oli Vartiotorni, josta lauloi Jimi Hendrix Bob Zimmermannin sanoilla. Eikös se ollut se kivikasa Jaakobin Ukrainan ja Laabanin Venäjän rajalla albumissa 171, Raakelin (raamatun vahva nainen nro 4/20) kohdalla?
ellauri185.html on line 113: Shortly thereafter, Saul leads Israel to a victory over Nahash of Ammon. Despite his numerous military victories, Saul disobeys Yahweh's instruction to destroy Amalek: Saul spares the Amalekite ruler and the best portion of the Amalekite flocks to present them as sacrifices. Samuel rebukes Saul and tells him that God has now chosen another man to be king of Israel.
ellauri185.html on line 137: For the remainder of David's reign, problems occur. Amnon (one of David's sons) rapes his half-sister Tamar (one of David's daughters). Absalom (another son of David) kills Amnon and rebels against his father, whereupon David flees from Jerusalem. Absalom is killed following the Battle of the Wood of Ephraim, and David is restored as king and returns to his palace. Finally, only two contenders for the succession remain: Adonijah, son of David and Haggith, and Solomon, son of David and Bathsheba.
ellauri185.html on line 174: 10.3.2022 klo 8.19 - Oma Profiili: Anna saattaisi pitää espanjalaisen nobelistin Juan Ramon Jimenezin idyllisestä pikku teoxesta nimeltä Harmo ja minä.
ellauri185.html on line 368: However, perturbed by the problem of evil, he lost his own faith at the age of eight, and turned to poetry-writing. Se oli Balliolin miehiä kuten parkinsonin vaivaama Nick Ostler. Evil ei ole mikään probleema ellei ole uskovaisia.
ellauri185.html on line 412: In 2004, Pinker was named in Time's "The 100 Most Influential People in the World Today", and in the years 2005, 2008, 2010, and 2011 in Foreign Policy's list of "Top 100 Global Thinkers". Pinker was also included in Prospect Magazine's top 10 "World Thinkers" in 2013. He has won awards from the American Psychological Association, the National Academy of Sciences, the Royal Institution, the Cognitive Neuroscience Society, and the American Humanist Association.
ellauri185.html on line 442: New Scientistin toimittaja, sittemmin Jeremy Webfoot, vastasi puolustamalla artikkelia sanomalla, että lehti on "idealehti - se tarkoittaa kirjoittamista päättömistä hypoteeseista as well as teorioista". Tammikuussa 2009 New Scientist julkaisi kannen otsikolla "Darwin oli väärässä". Varsinaisessa tarinassa todettiin, että Darwinin evoluutioteorian jotkut pikku yksityiskohdat oli osoitettu väärixi, lähinnä toisiinsa liittyvien lajien fylogeneettisten puun muoto, joka olisi esitettävä verkkona puun sijasta. Jotkut evoluutiobiologit, jotka vastustavat aktiivisesti älykästä suunnitteluliikettä, pitivät kantta sekä sensaatiohakuisena että vahingollisena tiedeyhteisölle. No mä olinkin vähän haistavinani älykkään suunnittelun pukinsorkkaa tässä Tiede 2022-lehden tarjoomuxessa. En ilmeisesti ollut väärässä.
ellauri185.html on line 472: Uskonto on ja se tulee olemaan järjettömän apinan ja sen järjettömän toiminnan elinehto. Eikä mikä tahansa uskonto, vaan todellinen alkuperäinen väärentämätön ja vetistämätön kristinusko. Tolstoi luulee virheellisesti löytävänsä sen vuorisaarnasta, vaikka kaikki tietävät etteivät sen reportterit edes olleet paikalla. Kannattaisi mieluummin konsultoida Naahum Mailerin ja Jose Saramagon autobiografioita. Jeesus sentään tiettävästi oli läsnä, jos ylipäänsä kukaan.
ellauri185.html on line 588: Perustellakseen näitä ihmeellisiä johtopäätöksiään Tolstoi toisinaan turvautuu varsin omituisiin viisasteluihin ja loogillisiin akrobaattitemppuihin. Niin sanoo hän esim. kerran:
ellauri185.html on line 663: Tässä kuvassa näemme koko obeesin Lutherin ilmielävänä ja havainnollisena edessämme karhean kansanomaisena piereskelemässä ytimekkään syvältä. Samalla ilmenee siinä hänen valtiokäsityksensä ydin. Lutherin käsitys valtion oikeutuksesta on tässä kuvassa saanut iskevän terävän ilmauksensa: ihmiset on paskoja, rotinkaiset semminkin.
ellauri185.html on line 798: The firstborn of a mother is referred to in the Bible (Exodus 13:2) as one who “opens the womb” of his mother. Jacob and Esau vied for right of way through Rebecca's birth canal. Esau won that set, but the game went to Jacob.
ellauri185.html on line 865: As previous biographers have discovered, it’s difficult to write an endearing biography of Bellow. “Was I a man or was I a jerk?” Bellow inquired on his deathbed. The answer should be obvious.
ellauri188.html on line 98: From 1838 to 1839, the Catholic mission was able to establish itself, supported by the French order Pères et religieuses des Sacrés-Cœurs de Picpus, which was not founded until 1800. The missionaries spread from Mangareva to Tahuata, Ua Pou, Fatu Hiva and Nuku Hiva. They suffered the same hostile reception and tribal warfare as their fellow Protestants. However, with the support of the French authorities, they were able to sustain themselves in the long run, despite all the obstacles. They even managed to baptize King Moana of Nuku Hiva, who, however, died of smallpox in 1863. Regrettably, but he got salvaged anyway.
ellauri188.html on line 128: I found the breadfruit abundant on all the islands visited (fortunately, I was not obliged to eat poipoi) somewhat dwarfed when growing in the "jungle" in neglected valleys, but an enormous and noble tree when given space. The "jungle" of the Marquesas, by the way (although the islands are between 8 and 11 degrees south latitude) is by no means a tropical jungle as the latter is usually pictured, but is made up very largely of young and old and dying and dead specimens of the Fau, or Purao tree, a native hibiscus which grows to a large size, and is much used by the natives for building. One does not see, in the Marquesas, the rank, choking growths peculiar to Brazil, Central America and other really tropical countries. The appearance of the valleys in that group is more subtropical than tropical, and hence, while this growth may dwarf the breadfruit to a greater or less extent, it does not seem that it would always be fatal to its existence.
ellauri188.html on line 142: Referring to the last paragraph in Mr. Wester's communication-It would appear that if one is dependent, as was the writer, upon trading schooners to get from Tahiti to the Marquesas, then amongst these islands and return to Tahiti, his program for work in these two groups would take more than a year and his estimate of expense might, in consequence, be exceeded. Sometimes one is obliged to wait from one month to three to get the opportunity to move from one island in the Marquesas to another forty or fifty or eighty miles away, so rare and uncertain are the visits of these schooners. Further, in the absence of any regular means of communication, one has to seize any chance opportunity of transportation or run the risk of being marooned for a long period. On the other hand, if a schooner were chartered, which is the best possible way of visiting and working among the South Sea Islands, schooner, captain, crew and provisions would cost about $1,000 per month (this figure was obtained from an authoritative source) and a year on shipboard might not be needed. Under such conditions Mr. Wester's calculation of $8,500 for a year's work in the Marquesas and Societies may not be far out of the way.
ellauri188.html on line 287: Toimittaja suosittelee|Kansallisteatterissa Seela Sella laulaa Bob Dylania, Svenska Teaternissa Kjell Westö lausuu runoja – ”Tuntuu tärkeältä, että voi tehdä edes jotain”.
ellauri188.html on line 311: In the 1840s Britain and France considered sponsoring continued independence of the Republic of Texas and blocking U.S. moves to obtain California. Balance of power considerations made Britain want to keep the western territories out of U.S. hands to limit U.S. power; in the end, France opposed such intervention in order to limit British power, the same reason for which France had sold Louisiana to the U.S. and earlier supported the American Revolution. Thus the great majority of the territorial growth of the continental United States was accepted without question by Paris.
ellauri188.html on line 376: Hän saavutti kirjallisen uransa alkupuolella menestystä merta käsitelleillä seikkailukertomuksillaan, mutta myöhemmin hänen suosionsa hiipui ja kuollessaan hänet oli melkein unohdettu. Myöhemmin Melville on konstruoitu ihan väkinäisesti yhdeksi amerikkalaisen kirjallisuuden keskeisistä klassikoista. Hänen tunnetuin teoksensa on valaanpyytäjistä kertova Moby Dick.
ellauri188.html on line 380: Melvillen kanssa Acushnet-alukselta Nuku Hivalla karannut Richard Tobias "Toby" Greene ja Hermanni. Söpöjä meripoikia.
ellauri188.html on line 386: Palattuaan Yhdysvaltoihin Melville teki jälleen tilapäisiä töitä. Hän päätyi jälleen merille, kun hän lähti 22-vuotiaana valaanpyyntialus Acushnetin mukana Tyynellemerelle 3. tammikuuta 1841. Melville jätti 9. heinäkuuta 1842 yhdessä Richard Tobias Greenen kanssa aluksen Nuku Hivalla Marquesassaarilla ja karkasi saaren sisäosiin. Paikalliset naapuriheimoja kohtaan aggressiiviset ja jopa kannibalismia harjoittaneet taipiit nappasivat Melvillen ja Greenen. Tärkein lähde Melvillen Nuku Hivan -ajasta on hänen seikkailullinen matkakirjansa Taipii – kappale polynesialaisten elämää, jonka perusteella hän oli saarella sekä vankina että vieraana. Melville asui taipiiden luona neljä viikkoa ja listautui sen jälkeen australiaiselle valaanpyyntialukselle Lucy-Ann. Hän kieltäytyi aluksella työnteosta, ja hänet vangittiin Tahitilla. Sieltä hän pääsi Havaijille, missä hänestä tuli Yhdysvaltain laivaston USS United Statesin matruusi. Elokuussa 1843 alkanut kotimatka Havaijilta päättyi Bostoniin 14 kuukautta myöhemmin.
ellauri188.html on line 392: 31-vuotiaana Melville tapasi Pittsfieldissä kesällä 1850 46-vuotiaan Nathaniel Hawthornen, jonka kanssa "ystävystyi". Kirjailijat viettivät paljon aikaa keskustellen komeista intellektuelleista ja filosofisista asioista. Hawthorne myös vaikutti Melvillen seuraavan romaanin Moby Dick sisältöön, sillä hän kannusti Melvilleä tekemään siitäkin allegorisen tarinan suoran valaanpyyntikertomuksen sijaan. Ai siis mitä? kysyi Hermanni. No kikkeli, kikkeli, tietysti, selvitti Nat kärsimättömästi. Vaikka kirja on nykyään todella tunnettu, omana aikanaan se oli paha pettymys. Sitä myytiin koko Melvillen elinaikana vain 3 000 kappaletta. Hänen seuraava romaaninsa Pierre oli vieläkin suurempi floppi.
ellauri188.html on line 394: Pierren julkaisun jälkeen Melville yritti saada töitä konsulaattina. Hän julkaisi vuosina 1853–1856 neljätoista novellia ja pientä kirjoitelmaa sanomalehdissä. Melvillen taloudellinen tilanne heikkeni, eikä hänen ensimmäisiä runojaan suostuttu julkaisemaan. Hän joutui myymään talonsakin, mutta sai lopulta 1866 töitä tullitarkastajana. Hän jatkoi kuitenkin kirjoittamista, ja joitain hänen runojaan julkaistiinkin. Melville jäi eläkkeelle 1889 ja kuoli 1891. Kirjallisuuspiirit olivat tuolloin käytännössä unohtaneet hänen uransa, ja The New York Timesin kuolinilmoituksessa Moby Dick oli kirjoitettu väärin Mobile Dick. Ei sentään Prick.
ellauri188.html on line 413: Josh skipped college to start acting at 19. He dared to dream and got a job as DIY professor at Vanderbilt. Tennessee on Louisianasta luoteeseen. Mekin ajettiin tota hirmu pitkää Baton Rougen bridgeä Nikun isän autossa. Ei sentään tullut myrskyä.
ellauri188.html on line 417: The second part of his career began with a lead role in the British rowing film Big Blue (released in the US as Miracle and as Debacle at Oxford), in which he played a hotshot Navy rower who recruited another American, "Toby", to help US win our annual round Nuku Hiva boat race with the Frenchies.
ellauri188.html on line 427: Lucas met freelance writer Jessica "Chichua" Ciencin Henriquez at a dog park in 2011. They became knotted six weeks later and got loose on March 17, 2012, in Central Park. Their pup, Noah Reb Maurer, was born in June 2012. In January 2014, Ciencin Henriquez filed for a divorce that became final in October 2014.
ellauri188.html on line 434: Toby Duck
ellauri188.html on line 436: Jopa ulkomuodoltaan Toby veti minua puoleensa, sillä kun valtaosa miehistöstä oli yhtä karkeaa ulkoiselta olemukseltaan kuin hengeltäänkin Toby oli harvinaisen hauskannäköinen. Siniseen matruusintakkiin ja purjekangashousuihin sonnustautuneena hän näytti niin tyylikkäältä merimieheltä ettei häntä tyylikkäämpää ollut taatusti koskaan nähty yhdenkään laivan kannella; hän oli pieni ja sirotekoinen ja hänen vartensa oli tavattoman notkea. Hänen jo luonnostaan tumma ihonsa oli paahtunut tropiikin auringossa, ja pikimustien kutrien kimppu laskeutui hänen ohimoilleen ja sai hänen kookkaat tummat silmänsä näyttämään entistä tummemmilta. Hän oli omituinen ja itsepäinen, oikukas, ailahteleva ja haikea-joskus jopa synkkämielinen. Hänellä oli myös kiivas ja tuima luonne ja suuttuessaan hän suuttui silmittömästi.
ellauri188.html on line 438: Aidon väkevillä tunteilla on kummallinen valta heikkoihin luonteisiin. Olin säikähtänyt useinkin sen hennon poikasen hillitöntä raivonpuuskaa. Viime aikoina olin havainnut Tobyn synkkämielisyyden suuresti lisääntyneen ja saarelle saavuttuamme olin monesti nähnyt hänen silmäilevän kaihoisasti minua samalla kun muu miehistö elämöi kannen alla.
ellauri188.html on line 440: Kun kuten jo sanoin. näin Tobyn nojailevan parraspuuhun syviin ajatuksiin vaipuneena juolahti heti mieleeni että hänen mietiskelynsä kohde saattoi olla sama kuin minunkin. Ja jos niin oli, tuumin, enkö kaikista laivatovereistani haluaisi juuri hänet kumppanikseni pikku seikkailuun. Ja miksen ottaisi mukaan toveria jonka kanssa voisin jakaa retken vaarat ja jolta voisin saada lievitystä sen vaikeuksiin? Saattaisin kukaties joutua piileksimään jossain koijassa viikkokausia. Millainen lohtu kumppanista olisikaan sellaisessa tapauksessa.
ellauri188.html on line 442: Tällaiset ajatukset risteilivät mielessäni, ja kummastelin miksen ollut aikaisemmin tullut ajatelleeksi asiaa siinä valossa. Mutta vielä ei ollut liian myöhäistä: hartian kosketus havahdutti Tobyn mietteistä, totesin hänet kypsäksi kauraxi ja muutama sana riitti saamaan keskinäisen ymmärryksen välillemme. Tunnin kuluttua olimme päässeet esivalmisteluista ja laatineet toimintasuunnitelman. Me vahvistimme sitten sopimuksemme liittämällä kätemme hellästi yhteen ja välttääksemme epäluuloja vetäydyimme koijaamme viettämään viimeistä yhteistä yötä lemmenlaivalla.
ellauri189.html on line 96: grona,/ Poddany – lecz swobodę z ojca powziął łona,/ I gdy dumnie pojrzawszy do pana iść żąda,/ Wśród wiodącej go zgrai jak władca wygląda”;
ellauri189.html on line 109: more important than its very Byronic plot, of which I will give only a short outline. The son of a wealthy magnate has fallen in love with the daughter of a petty nobleman (miecznik, the “sword-bearer”, a purely nominal provincial
ellauri189.html on line 134: Dochodząc – naprzeciwko jasnego obłoku,
ellauri189.html on line 148: Podobni do jakiego od Niebianów. (52, my italics, A.v.N.)
ellauri189.html on line 184: Czerwonym blaskiem szare barwiło obłoki,
ellauri189.html on line 214: The boundless steppe of the Ukraine turns out to be a cage with invisible bars. Man appears at first sight to be free, without apparent goal roaming over the plain of life, being a lord of the steppe, “a king of the wilderness” (“król pustyni”), or tries to create in a premeditated manner his own future, deciding – by the way – on the fate of his fellow men (the source of unceasing conflicts). However, in the latter case he often unwittingly obeys the voice of his own wild, unruly nature. The ambivalence of this situation seems to be intimately connected with the concept of romantic irony. Man possesses the ability to objectify his passions, i.e. he can explain them psychologically, by means of a chain of causes and effects, but he still remains the slave of this volitional nature that constitutes his innermost self, always and ever receding (like the horizon of the Ukrainian plain) when he tries to catch it (the idea of the Unconscious does not really explain this “schizophrenic” state of mind – it merely affirms man’s essential homelessness: I am myself, when I realize that my self eternally escapes me). - I can relate to that, says the Russian tank driver sitting stuck in the Ukrainian mud.
ellauri189.html on line 232: W głębi to, w głębi serca, robak przewinienia;
ellauri189.html on line 238: I puszczyk z wieży zaczął grobowe wołania;
ellauri189.html on line 239: A jeszcze – w bocznym skrzydle obszernej budowy,
ellauri189.html on line 322: Tämän lisäksi on hyvä muistaa, että aika harva nainen on aloittanut sotia. Vain ne jotka on päässeet keon huipulle, eikä niitä ole monta. Olet niin oikeassa siitä, etteivät naiset aloita sotia. Menneisyydenkin soturikuningattaret, kuten Zenobia ja Boudicca vain puolustivat omaa maataan, toisin kuin miekkoset, he eivät hyökänneet mihinkään. Sotilaita vaan lähettivät.
ellauri189.html on line 333: Asenteisiin rotia, kyllä! Ja nimenomaan muiden asenteisiin! Globalismi on vienyt hengellisen suomalaisuuden ja nuoret eivät löydä enää sitä isänmaanrakkautta joka joskus oli, eivät löydä syytä taistella. Opiskelemme ruotsinkieltä, päätökset tehdään brysselissä ja pian nato vie loputkin siitä hengellisestä suomalaisuudesta mitä on jäljellä, jäljelle jää kielitaitoinen mutta sieluton kansa jolla ei ole moraalia taistella jonkin näkymättömän puolesta.
ellauri189.html on line 408: SEACRET is a globally notorious cosmetic company that offers a wide range of products for men and women. The unique combination of innovative technology and healing Dead Sca and natural ingredients transforms SEACRET into an exclusive, sought after and high quality brand:
ellauri189.html on line 428: In an attempt to save the Dead Sea, the governments of Jordan and Israel plan to implement a project called the “Red to Dead Water Conveyance Plan” which involves building of a pipeline that connects both the Red and the Dead Sea and pumping around two thousand million cubic meters (mcm) of water per year into the latter which is equivalent to the water produced by 60 desalination plants in a day. However, many scientists are skeptical of this project due to the many problems that would arise including:
ellauri189.html on line 436: On the basis of these apprehensions it seems that this project would do little to help rectify the problem and might even add to it. An alternative way to save the Dead Sea would be to rehabilitate the Jordan River. As it stands today, only 50 mcm of water from the Jordan River reaches the Dead Sea as opposed to 1.3 billion cubic meters in 1950.
ellauri189.html on line 438: The Jordan River is a shadow of what it once was. The river acts as the main water source for Jordan, Israel, and the West Bank. As a result, 90% of the fresh water that replenishes it is diverted to agriculture. Another problem facing it is pollution from agricultural and wastewater run-offs. About 50% of the agricultural run-offs from the surrounding areas are dumped into the river which has caused its water levels to drop dramatically.
ellauri189.html on line 461: Aivan hirveätä scheissea! Kun kuulen sanan "lupaus", tai globaalixi "I promise", tai edes sanat "rehellisyys ja reiluus", globaalixi "honesty and fairness", poistan varmistimen ydinlatauxesta. Voi olla varma että nyt on tulossa jotain aivan hirveätä paskaa, apinaa koijataan rankasti toisten apinoiden taholta. Näitä sanoja hokevat vain sellaiset, joille ne on nokkelaa ansaintalogiikkaa eli siitä puhe mistä puute.
ellauri189.html on line 474: Retail commissions are paid out Seacret agents weekly and reflect both your offline product order dorms and your website orders. You don’t have to be qualified or active to be eligible for this commission. Orders placed by customers have to be through your replicated website or via order forms that you submit. This type of commission is obtained from the difference between the wholesale price and retail price of the product.
ellauri189.html on line 542: I believe that you can make an extra income and secure your family’s financial future by using the amazing opportunities of the internet. I am talking about Affiliate Marketing. It is the business that many successful online entrepreneurs have used to reach their financial security. It is the method I use. I want to help you build a sustainable and successful business, built on a solid foundation. A business you can count on regardless of the economy, your age or your job.
ellauri189.html on line 568: In a Ponzi scheme, a con artist offers investments that promise very high returns with little or no risk to his victims. The returns are said to originate from a business or a secret idea run by the con artist. In reality, the business does not exist or the idea does not work. The con artist actually pays the high returns promised to his earlier investors by using the money obtained from later investors. In other words, instead of engaging in a legitimate business activity, the con artist attempts to attract new investors in order to make the payments that were promised to earlier investors. The operator of the scheme also diverts his clients' funds for his personal use.
ellauri189.html on line 660: Flera västerländska poeter har inspirerats av och lånat element från den persiska ghazalen. Bland dessa märks Robert Bly, John Thompson och Phyllis Webb.
ellauri189.html on line 695: det gamla obevekligt hårda gallret Vanhaa leppymättömän kovaa kalteria
ellauri189.html on line 736: According to this explanation for the origin of this tradition, at some generation A, some Pashtuns decided they are Bene Israel. Then they convinced or forced the other Pashtuns, although no one has ever heard of it before. Time had passed, and at generation B the tradition was already so acceptable, that not only many (probably most) of the Pashtuns believed it, but they completely forgot that once, at generation A, some Pashtuns invented it and convinced or forced others it is true. Very like the way some zealot Jews in generation A convinced others that their windy god was the only one. But this is irrational.
ellauri189.html on line 751: Not eating sea-creatures such as lobsters, shrimps, and crabs, and animals like camels and horses, and meat with cheese. These are, in fact, not Kosher (cannot be eaten) according to the Torah given to the people of Israel by God through Moses.
ellauri189.html on line 767: Some Pashtun women grow side brows (called Kamsai in Pashto). A lot of Jewish males do that too (mainly Hasidim (Ashkenazi) and Yemen Jews). Jews and Pashtuns are probably the only ones in the world who do this.
ellauri189.html on line 769: Using names like Yaakov (Christians use Jacob but only Jews and Pashtuns use it as it should be pronounced), Israel, Barak, Asaf, Benyamin, Kenan, Tamir, Timor, Shir, Sahar, etc.
ellauri189.html on line 791: It is true that the Pashtuns do not speak Hebrew, but I think it is highly probable that Pashto is the Yidish of Pashtuns. It is also possible that Pashtuns didn’t need another foreign language (like Jews needed to know German or Spanish) because unlike Jews, Pashtuns had their own territory. It might be just a wild theory, but it might have been used, like Yidish, so that Pashtuns won’t mix with other nations.
ellauri189.html on line 827: I thought that this information might be helpful in case you encounter a Jew who doesn´t keep the Tora as well as you do (like if he eats lobsters) - it is because he is not from category A, and it is possible that he isn´t Jewish at all.
ellauri190.html on line 38: Ison-Paulin ensimmäinen lapsuudenmuisto oli kun se kazoi Eiran ikkunasta (ei sen oman Reban kivitalon vaan Wilhon ensimmäisen Eiran asunnon Chydeniuxentiellä) irtokasakoita nagaikoineen razastelemassa Eiran katuja svobodan päivinä.
ellauri190.html on line 63: The Ukrainian term Cossack probably comes from the same Kipchak etymological root: wanderer, brigand, independent free-booter.
ellauri190.html on line 128: 990-luvulla rusien ja petsenegien välit huononivat uudelleen. Kiovan suuriruhtinas Vladimir Suuri löi (993) heidän joukkonsa Trubez-joen varrella (varmasn Trubezkoin kotipuro), mutta vuonna 996 hän itse kärsi tappion Vasikolkovin kaupungin luona. Näiden tapahtumien vuoksi suuriruhtinas rakennutti arorajalleen vartiolinnoitusten ketjun, joiden välillä oli hyvin nopea ja tehokas varoitusjärjestelmä petsenegien hyökkäyksistä. Samantapainen kuin taipiilla markiisisaarilla. 1000-luvulla poljaaniheimon kupeessa oli 13 eri petseneegiheimoa, jotka liikkuivat Tonavan ja Dneprin välimaastossa. Noin vuonna 1010 petsenegien välille tuli kiistoja. Ruhtinas Tirahin petsenegit ottivat uskokseen islamilaisuuden, kun taas kaksi läntistä heimoa (belemarnit ja pagumanidit: yhteensä 20 000 henkeä) ruhtinas Kegenin johdolla siirtyi Tonavan yli Bysantin valtakunnan alueelle keisari Konstantinos IX aikana Dobrudzhaan ja he kääntyivät ortodoksikristityiksi. Tästä seurasi no end of trouble petsenegeille. Bysantin keisari suunnitteli saavansa heistä vartijakansan pohjoisrajalleen. Mutta vuonna 1048 ruhtinas Tirahin johdolla valtava määrä petsenegejä (melkein 80 000) ylitti jäätä pitkin Tonavan ja hyökkäsivät Bysantin balkanilaisia alueita vastaan.
ellauri190.html on line 132: Viimeinen kirjallinen maininta rusien ja petsenegien taistelusta on Kiovan piiritys vuonna 1036, jolloin suuriruhtinaan joukot tuhosivat kaupunkia piirittäneet petsenegijoukot. Suuriruhtinas Jaroslav käytti taistelussa kahta taistelusiipeä: kiovalaiset ja novgorodilaiset. (Dodi, ryssäkansat toimivat tässä yhteistuumin veriveljinä.)Tämän taistelun jälkeen petsenegejä ei mainita enää itsenäisinä, vaan he osallistuivat taisteluihin uuden liittolaisensa, berendien, kanssa. Heitä nimitettiin myös tsorni klobukeiksi (eli mustahatuiksi). Ryssät olivat valkohattuja. Muisto petsenegeistä on jäänyt eloon myös myöhemmille ajoille kuten kirjallisuudessa rohkea Tselubei, joka ryhtyi Kulikovin taistelussa kaksintaisteluun. Häntä nimitettiin petsengiksi. Kulikov oli joku käpistelijä Kielikoneella. Ei sitä kyllä pezengixi sanottu. Pezit oli pienen tiilen muotosia karkkeja hassussa dispenserissä.
ellauri190.html on line 245: On Easter Sunday of the year 1168, a savage warlord from the Volga region, called Andrei (cynically nicknamed Bogolubsky, i.e. “God-lover”) and his horde of Finno-Ugric tribesmen (damn those Finns!) sacked and burned Kyiv to the ground. Most Kyivites were massacred. The barbarians robbed churches, even ripping off slices of gold from their domes (something that Genghiside Mongolians later never did, they were gentlemen). They stole, among others, one most precious and revered icon of the Most Holy Mother of God from a church in the Berestovo village just south of Kyiv, taking it to their land and pretending, for centuries to follow, that it was theirs. This icon to this day is known as Матерь Божья Владимирская, “the Mother of God of Vladimir-on-Klyazyma,” as if it was painted in that savage place. The 1168 massacre marked the beginning of the “brotherly” relationship between the Ukrainian people and what is now known as “Russians” (русские, not to be confused with Rusyns-Rusychi-Ukrainians). Kyiv was hit so hard that it did not fully recover for the next ~200 years. When the Mongols under Khan Batu came in 1240, Kyiv was still not fully repopulated or rebuilt, and fell a relatively easy prey to the Asian conquerors.
ellauri190.html on line 265: The Princes and the Kozaks, Part 2. In this feature, we are using the term “Kozak”, the transliteration of the original Ukrainian word, to distinguish the Zaporizhian, Sloboda and other Ukrainian talk hosts. Russian hosts from Don, Terek etc are called “Cossacks”. (Volga Volga, äiti armas, meri meidän synnyinmaan, uhris näätkö tyytyväinen, Donin ootko kasakkaan.)
ellauri190.html on line 271: Also, during the 16th century, many thousands of random men, mostly young, robust, and adventure-seeking guys from all over Ukraine (compare today's immigrants), traveled to the lower Dnipro river, where the enormous rapids prevented the movement of battleships up from the Black Sea, and decided to call themselves, say, Kozaks. These Kozaks warriors wanted to defend the Orthodox Christian Ukrainian lands from the attacks of the Ottoman Turks. They founded their own city and fortress, called Sich, on the island of Khortytsya in the middle of the Dnipro river. There, they gathered in summertime, trained, and raided the steppes, fighting the Turkish and the Tatar troops from the Crimea. They also built ships and made sea raids on Istanbul and on Crimean seaports, freeing Christian captives whom the Turks and the Tatars enslaved. In winter, the Kozaks dispersed and lived close to the Dnipro banks as independent owners of their hamlets. At the beginning of the 17th century, the Kozaks became a formidable military force and a kind of a self-governing state with their own elected leaders and laws.
ellauri190.html on line 275: In 1648, a Kozak leader called Zinoviy Bohdan Khmelnytsky (Polish transliteration, Chmielnicki) started a war on the Polish crown. Initially, it was his own personal vendetta on a Polish landlord who stole his land, but very soon it grew into a colossal uprising of the Kozaks and Ukrainian peasants against their Polish landlords. The people fought (the way they knew how) against the feudal oppression, as well as against forced Catholicization and Polonization of Ukraine. Unfortunately, it turned into a fratricide. (Sorry Poles, of course we are on the same side now.) The main adversary of Khmelnytsky was Prince Yarema (Jeremiah) Korybut-Vyshnevetsky, a Rusyn-Ukrainian, a noble valiant knight and a great statesman who, nonetheless, kept his allegiance to the Polish king (whom he personally hated, but could not break his knight’s oath of loyalty). Both sides resorted to unspeakable cruelties. Most tragically, Khmelnysky, a brave warrior as he was, turned out to be a horribly short-sighted politician. In January 1654, he essentially surrendered Ukraine to Muscovy, approving what he thought was a temporary military union against the Republic but turned out to be the beginning of the “Russian” (actually Muscovite) occupation of Ukraine. It just goes to show: give a pinky finger to the Russkies and they take the whole hand.
ellauri190.html on line 277: By 1659, the two outstanding sons of Ukraine, a Kozak general Ivan Vyhovsky and an eccentric scholar-nobleman Yuriy Nemyrych conceived what became known as the Union of Hadyach. It was a unique document, which, essentially, argued in favor of the Polish-Lithuanian Commonwealth transforming into the commonwealth of Poland, Lithuania, and Ukraine. Vyhovsky and Nemyrych proposed to establish a Great Principality of Ukraine on par with the Kingdom of Poland and the Great Duchy of Lithuania. And it was a unique historical moment, because in July 1659 the Ukrainian troops won a huge battle against the Muscovite army near the city of Konotop, totally crushing the Muscovites and proving that Ukraine did not need the “friendship” of the tyrannic Tzars. (See the analogy?) If the Hadyach Union had been approved by the Sejm of the Republic, Ukraine would perhaps have become a more European country and would progressively move toward full Western style independence. Again, tragically, it did not happen. Nemyrych was killed at a duel, and Vyhovsky forced to resign by populists who hated him because of his aristocratic blood and his alleged (rather than actual) love of things Polish. Without these two luminaries, the Sejm did not even bother to convene for discussions on the Hadyach Union, making it into a useless piece of paper. It was later “adopted,” but in such a distorted version that it excluded its main point, the creation of the Ukrainian state. Sellasta se on. Ukrainan, Puolan ja Baltian historia osoittaa, miten vaikeaa on merkata reviiriä jollei sitä ole valmiixi maastoon merkitty.
ellauri190.html on line 279: By the end of the 17th century, the newly forming Russian Empire under Tzar Peter I established its reign over the Ukrainian lands to the east of the Dnipro river, ceding the western part of Ukraine to the Republic (which, in turn, evolved more and more into the Polish monarchy rather than the Polish-Lithuanian Commonwealth of the old days). In 1702, a great son of Ukraine, a giant of military strategy, diplomacy, and statesmanship, Ivan Mazepa, being the Kozak leader of the eastern part of Ukraine, suppressed the uprising of Paliy on the other (Western) side of the Dnipro and added huge parts of the country to his control. It was a big step toward the unification and freedom of Ukraine. Moreover, in 1709 Mazepa joined his forces with the Swedish king Charles XII (haha, the gay) against Tzar Peter, hoping to rid his dear mother Ukraine from slavery in the captivity of the Tzars. And again… tragically, Mazepa managed to gather less manpower than he hoped to gather, because the populist agitators slandered him in their massive propaganda campaign (no doubt, directed from Muscovy), portraying him in the eyes of the Ukrainian Kozaks as a rich aristocrat who cares nothing about the “simple people,” a clandestine Catholic (or Protestant), and overall “not really Ukrainian.” (This tragedy will repeat itself in 1918 and in 2019.) Mazepa’s loyalists were defeated together with the Swedes, and Ukraine lost her historical chance for yet another time. But third time is a charm! Nobody will blame a Jew for being on the side of the catholics!
ellauri190.html on line 283: But the nobility obtained legal ownership of vast expanses of land on the Dnipro from the Polish kings, and then attempted to impose feudal dependency on the local population. Landowners utilized the locals in war, by raising the Cossack registry in times of hostility, and then radically decreasing it and forcing the Cossacks back into serfdom in times of peace. This institutionalized method of control bred discontent among the Cossacks. By the end of the 16th century, they began to revolt, in the uprisings of Kryshtof Kosynsky (1591–1593), Severyn Nalyvaiko (1594–1596), Hryhorii Loboda (1596), Marko Zhmailo (1625), Taras Fedorovych (1630), Ivan Sulyma (1635), Pavlo Pavliuk and Dmytro Hunia (1637), and Yakiv Ostrianyn and Karpo Skydan (1638). All were brutally suppressed and ended by the Polish government.
ellauri190.html on line 287: As a result of the mid–17th century Khmelnytsky Uprising, the Zaporozhian Cossacks briefly established an independent state, which later became the autonomous Cossack Hetmanate (1649–1764). It was placed under the suzerainty of the Russian Tsar from 1667, but was ruled by local hetmans for a century. The principal political problem of the hetmans who followed the Pereyeslav Agreement was defending the autonomy of the Hetmanate from Russian/Muscovite centralism. The hetmans Ivan Vyhovsky, Petro Doroshenko and Ivan Mazepa attempted to resolve this by separating Ukraine from Russia.
ellauri190.html on line 333: Tässä puolisensataa herra Petteriä plus 1 rouva, Zenobia, joka on otettu mukaan ihan säälistä. Tiedot ovat eräältä amerikkalaiselta sivulta. Kumma ettei yhtään amerikkalaista ole mukana? Ellei konkistadoreja lasketa. Hunnit olivat ilmeisesti Kiinan pohjoisnaapureita kiinalaiselta nimeltään Xiongnu. Ne miehittivät Saxan kansainvaellusten aikana ja saivat sillä lailla aikaan Rooman tuhon. Hitlerin Aatun aikana sanottiin sakemanneja vuorostaan hunneixi (the Huns). Ruottalaiset tunsi Attilan nimellä Atle. Listasta puuttuu ainakin toinen valloittava nainen, nimittäin Katariina Suuri.
ellauri190.html on line 407: Zenobia, Queen Palmyrene Empire
ellauri190.html on line 408: Zenobia was a 3rd-century Queen of the Palmyrene Empire in Syria, who led a famous revolt against the Roman Empire. The second wife of King Septimius Odaenathus, Zenobia became queen of the Palmyrene Empire following Odaenathus' death in 26...
ellauri190.html on line 448: Alp Arslan was the second Sultan of the Seljuq Empire and great-grandson of Seljuq, the eponymous founder of the dynasty. His real name was Muhammad bin Dawud Chaghri, and for his military prowess, personal valour, and fighting skills he ob...
ellauri190.html on line 453: Roger I (Roger Guiscard), c.1031-1101, Norman conqueror of Sicily; son of Tancred de Hauteville. He went to Italy in 1058 to join his brother, Robert Guiscard, in conquering Apulia and Calabria from the Byzantines. Between 1061 and 1091 he...
ellauri190.html on line 560: Toyotomi Hideyoshi was a daimyo who rose to become the second unifier of japan, after Oda Nobunaga. Hideyoshi was a very powerful emperor who exercised control over nearly all of mainland Japan through shrewd military tactics. He is known f...
ellauri191.html on line 4:
ellauri191.html on line 36: To Alfred Nobel in 1866, in recognition of a step forward into making bombs, which has helped growth explosion in a lot of ways.
ellauri191.html on line 48: Sen lisäxi kulttuuriprofiilit miettivät joka vuosi tarkkaan palkinnon poliittisen sanoman. Ihan seuraamalla kirjallisuus- ja rauhanpalkintojen maa- ja kielijakaumaa voi aika lailla nähdä missä päin on (Amerikkaa kyllä aika johdonmukaisesti hännystellen) ruozalaisten sympatiat olleet kulloinkin. Nobel-palkinto maan A toisinajattelijoille on kiva tapa päästä puun takaa vittuilemaan maan A vallanpitäjille. Hinoa John!
ellauri191.html on line 52: Kaikki typpilannoitteisiin perustuvat räjähteet kexi saxalaiset kemistit 19. vuosisadalla. Lucky Luke kuskasi nestemäistä nitroglyseriiniä. Nobel kexi lisätä siihen savea ja tehdä dynypötköjä, mistä kynäilijät ovat sille ikuisesti kiitollisia.
ellauri191.html on line 54: Trinitrotolueeni (/ˌtraɪˌnaɪtroʊˈtɒljuiːn/), joka tunnetaan yleisemmin nimellä TNT, tarkemmin sanottuna 2,4,6-trinitrotolueeni, ja sen näppärällä IUPAC-nimellä 2-metyyli-1,3,5-trinitrobentseeni, on kemiallinen yhdiste, jolla on kaava C6H2(NO2)3CH3. TNT:tä käytetään toisinaan reagenssina kemiallisessa synteesissä, mutta se tunnetaan parhaiten räjähtävänä materiaalina, jolla on kätevät käsittelyominaisuudet. TNT: n räjähtävää tehoa pidetään pommien tavanomaisena vertailumittana. TNT: n valmisti ensimmäisen kerran vuonna 1863 saksalainen kemisti Julius Wilbrand, ja sitä käytettiin alun perin keltaisena väriaineena. Sen räjähtävät ominaisuudet löydettiin ensimmäisen kerran "vahingossa" vuonna 1891 toisen saksalaisen kemistin Carl Häussermannin toimesta. Organismia, joka kykenee korjaamaan suuria määriä TNT:tä maaperässä, ei ole vielä löydetty. Ei ainakaan niitä valmistanut ja sinne levittänyt apina.
ellauri191.html on line 129: "as a tribute to his noble, magnificent and versatile poetry, which has always been distinguished by both the freshness of its inspiration and the rare purity of its spirit"
ellauri191.html on line 211: "in consideration of the power of observation, originality of imagination, virility of ideas and remarkable talent for narration that characterize the creations of this world-famous author"
ellauri191.html on line 230: Hoblan tiistairistikosta tavattu pirsonisti
ellauri191.html on line 283: obel.jpg" class="image">obel.jpg" src="https://upload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/05/Gerhart_Hauptmann_nobel.jpg/75px-Gerhart_Hauptmann_nobel.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/05/Gerhart_Hauptmann_nobel.jpg/113px-Gerhart_Hauptmann_nobel.jpg 1.5x, //upload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/05/Gerhart_Hauptmann_nobel.jpg/150px-Gerhart_Hauptmann_nobel.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 353: Kermaperse nobel-panelisti
ellauri191.html on line 445: "in recognition of his brilliant literary achievements, characterized as they are by a nobility of style, a profound human sympathy, grace, and a true Gallic temperament"
ellauri191.html on line 528: "for her idealistically inspired writings, which with plastic clarity picture the life on her native island and with depth and sympathy deal with human problems in general"
ellauri191.html on line 708: obel).jpg" class="image">obel).jpg" src="https://upload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bf/Pearl_Buck_%28Nobel%29.jpg/75px-Pearl_Buck_%28Nobel%29.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="106" srcset="https://upload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bf/Pearl_Buck_%28Nobel%29.jpg/113px-Pearl_Buck_%28Nobel%29.jpg 1.5x, //upload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/b/bf/Pearl_Buck_%28Nobel%29.jpg/150px-Pearl_Buck_%28Nobel%29.jpg 2x" data-file-width="280" data-file-height="396" />
ellauri191.html on line 835: "for his comprehensive and artistically significant writings, in which human problems and conditions have been presented with a fearless love of truth and keen psychological insight"
ellauri191.html on line 989: obel,_portrait_en_buste,_pos%C3%A9_au_bureau,_faisant_face_%C3%A0_gauche,_cigarette_de_tabagisme.jpg" class="image">obel, portrait en buste, posé au bureau, faisant face à gauche, cigarette de tabagisme.jpg" src="https://upload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/08/Albert_Camus%2C_gagnant_de_prix_Nobel%2C_portrait_en_buste%2C_pos%C3%A9_au_bureau%2C_faisant_face_%C3%A0_gauche%2C_cigarette_de_tabagisme.jpg/75px-Albert_Camus%2C_gagnant_de_prix_Nobel%2C_portrait_en_buste%2C_pos%C3%A9_au_bureau%2C_faisant_face_%C3%A0_gauche%2C_cigarette_de_tabagisme.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="90" srcset="https://upload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/08/Albert_Camus%2C_gagnant_de_prix_Nobel%2C_portrait_en_buste%2C_pos%C3%A9_au_bureau%2C_faisant_face_%C3%A0_gauche%2C_cigarette_de_tabagisme.jpg/113px-Albert_Camus%2C_gagnant_de_prix_Nobel%2C_portrait_en_buste%2C_pos%C3%A9_au_bureau%2C_faisant_face_%C3%A0_gauche%2C_cigarette_de_tabagisme.jpg 1.5x, //upload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/0/08/Albert_Camus%2C_gagnant_de_prix_Nobel%2C_portrait_en_buste%2C_pos%C3%A9_au_bureau%2C_faisant_face_%C3%A0_gauche%2C_cigarette_de_tabagisme.jpg/150px-Albert_Camus%2C_gagnant_de_prix_Nobel%2C_portrait_en_buste%2C_pos%C3%A9_au_bureau%2C_faisant_face_%C3%A0_gauche%2C_cigarette_de_tabagisme.jpg 2x" data-file-width="719" data-file-height="863" />
ellauri191.html on line 998: "for his important literary production, which with clear-sighted earnestness illuminates the problems of the human conscience in our times"
ellauri191.html on line 1602: "who through her magnificent epic writing has – in the words of Alfred Nobel – been of very great benefit to humanity"
ellauri191.html on line 1850: novel, screenplay, autobiography, essay
ellauri191.html on line 1866: novel, drama, poetry, short story, memoirs, autobiography
ellauri191.html on line 2005: ob_Dylan_-_Azkena_Rock_Festival_2010_1.jpg" class="image">ob Dylan - Azkena Rock Festival 2010 1.jpg" src="https://upload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d5/Bob_Dylan_-_Azkena_Rock_Festival_2010_1.jpg/75px-Bob_Dylan_-_Azkena_Rock_Festival_2010_1.jpg" decoding="async" width="75" height="100" srcset="https://upload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d5/Bob_Dylan_-_Azkena_Rock_Festival_2010_1.jpg/113px-Bob_Dylan_-_Azkena_Rock_Festival_2010_1.jpg 1.5x, //upload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/d/d5/Bob_Dylan_-_Azkena_Rock_Festival_2010_1.jpg/150px-Bob_Dylan_-_Azkena_Rock_Festival_2010_1.jpg 2x" data-file-width="1024" data-file-height="1367" />
ellauri191.html on line 2007: ob_Dylan" title="Bob Dylan">Bob Dylan
ellauri191.html on line 2118: autobiography, novel
ellauri191.html on line 2142: Näistä runsaasta sadasta enimmäxeen häiskästä on tuiki tuntemattomia vielä yli neljäkymmentä. Ollaan siis jo voiton puolella! Puhtaasti poliittisia nimityxiä ovat ainakin Churchill, Russell ja Robert Zimmermann. Likaisia poliittisia vetoja länkkärien puolesta on varmasti yli puolet kaikista. Voi olla lisääkin kun luen tarkemmin. Varmaan Mommsenkin on tapaus pisteessä: sen Rooman historia on avainromaani hullun vuoden jälkeiseen Saxan politiikkaan, jossa odoteltiin pukkia, ja se tulikin, nimittäin 2 maailmansodan johtajaa, rautakansleri ja Hitler. Bergson on täys pelle, niitäkin on varmaan muitakin. Nazeja on Hamsun ja Handke ainakin. Pesunkestäviä kommareita voi olla vastapropagandatarkoituxessa mukana jokunen. Ruozalaisia on huisisti enemmän kuin ansaizisi. Vahvaa dynyrahojen kotiinpäin vetoa.
ellauri191.html on line 2144: In the Wall Street Journal, Joseph Epstein wrote, "You might not know it, but you and I are members of a club whose fellow members include Leo Tolstoy, Henry James, Anton Chekhov, Mark Twain, Henrik Ibsen, Marcel Proust, James Joyce, Jorge Luis Borges and Vladimir Nabokov. [And, we might add: Virginia Woolf, Joseph Conrad, Anna Akhmatova, Ella Fitzgerald, and Eudora Welty.] The club is the Non-Winners of the Nobel Prize in Literature. All these authentically great writers, still alive when the prize, initiated in 1901, was being awarded, didn't win it."
ellauri191.html on line 2147: The first prize in 1901, awarded to the French poet Sully Prudhomme, was heavily criticised. Many believed that the acclaimed Russian author Tolstoy should have been awarded the first Nobel prize in literature.
ellauri191.html on line 2148: From 1901 to 1912, the committee, headed by the conservative Carl David af Wirsén, weighed the literary quality of a work against its contribution towards humanity's struggle 'toward the ideal'. Leo Tolstoy, Henrik Ibsen, Émile Zola, and Mark Twain were rejected in favour of authors little read today. The choice of philosopher Rudolf Eucken as Nobel laureate in 1908 is widely considered to be one of the worst mistakes in the history of the Nobel Prize in Literature. The main candidates for the prize that year were poet Algernon Swinburne and author Selma Lagerlöf, but the Academy were divided between the candidates and, as a compromise, Eucken, representative of the Academy's interpretation of Nobel's "ideal direction", was launched as an alternative candidate that could be agreed upon. Solzhenitsyn did not accept the award and prize money until 10 December 1974, after he was deported from the Soviet Union. Swedish Academy member Artur Lundkvist had argued that the Nobel Prize in Literature should not become a political prize and questioned the artistic value of Solzhenitsyn's work. The award to Camilo José Cela was controversial as he had moved voluntarily from Madrid to Galicia during the Spanish Civil War in order to join Franco's rebel forces there as a volunteer.A member of the Swedish Academy, Knut Ahnlund, who had not played an important role in the Academy since 1996, protested against the choice of the 2004 laureate, Elfriede Jelinek; Ahnlund resigned, alleging that selecting Jelinek had caused "irreparable damage" to the reputation of the award.
ellauri191.html on line 2150: Strindberg holds the singular distinction of being awarded an Anti-Nobel Prize, conferred by popular acclaim and national subscription and presented to him in 1912 by future prime minister Hjalmar Branting.
ellauri192.html on line 4:
ellauri192.html on line 53: Trubetzkoy oli strukturalismin patriarkkoja Roman Jakobsonin kaa, jota Lévi-Strauss koitti kaupata myös antropologiaan. Kielitieteessä se meni kaupaxi kuin siimaa, aina Chomskyyn saakka, joka antoi sille kuoliniskun transformaatioilla. Sillä kuten muistetaan, strukturalismin komplexisuus jää Chomskyn luokkaan 2. Trubetzkoyn fonologia hoituu enimmäxeen vielä yxinkertaisemmilla, luokan 3 äärellisillä automaateilla, joiden parissa Kimmo Koskenniemi jaxoi puuhastella koko uransa. Vaikka mitä väliä noilla Chomskyn yläluokilla on tekoälyn kannalta? Nehän perustuu äärettömyyden idealisaatioon. Neuroverkot osoittavat ettei sellaisia enää tarvita. Ajamalla äärellisen tilan mallia liukuluvuilla voi tavallisen nörtin pelikoneen grafiikkakorteilla simuloida aapan aivotoimintaa niin hyvin ettei sen oma aivokuori pysy mukana. Kukas sitä enempää älyä voi enää vaatia?
ellauri192.html on line 55: The Prague linguistic circle included the Russian émigrés Roman Jakobson, Nikolai Trubetzkoy, and Sergei Karcevskiy, as well as the famous Czech literary scholars René Wellek and Jan Mukařovský. The instigator of the circle, and its first president until his death in 1945, was the Czech linguist Vilém Mathesius. After the Czechoslovak coup d'état of 1948, the circle was disbanded in 1952 (another marked year), but the Prague School continued as a major force in linguistic functionalism.
ellauri192.html on line 59: Valentin Kiparskyn ja hänen toisen vaimonsa Dagmarin (o.s. Jaatinen) yhdysvaltalaistunut poika Paul Kiparsky (s. 28. tammikuuta 1941 Helsinki) opiskeli MIT:issä ja on Stanfordin yliopiston kielitieteen professori. Hän on merkittävällä urallaan tutkinut monien hullumpienkin ilmiöiden ohella (mm. Sanskritin) suomen kieleen liittyviä kysymyksiä. Hän on jo yli 80-vuotias. Hän riiteli 1. vaimonsa Carol Kiparskyn kanssa niin ärhäkästi että myöhästyivät ruualta, ja meni Californiassa Seijan kanssa rypyammeeseen, sellaiseen ulkosammioon, joka oli silloin uusinta muotia. En mennyt mukaan. Olen kahdellakin tapaa siis Prahan koulukunnan perillinen suoraan alenevassa polvessa: Juutalainen Morris Halle oli juutalaisen Jakobsonin oppilas, ja aateliset Kiparskyt saivat oppia vähintään yhtä aateliselta Trubetskoilta. Halle vittuili mulle kun olin masentunut, ja koitti syöttää suffixeja ja puffixeja lohtunamixi. Paul oli kiltti ja auttoi missä voi.
ellauri192.html on line 61: Jakobson was born in the Russian Empire on 11 October 1896 to a well-to-do family of Jewish descent, the industrialist Osip Jakobson and chemist Anna Volpert Jakobson. Under the pseudonym 'Aliagrov', he published books of zaum poetry and befriended the Futurists Vladimir Mayakovsky, Kazimir Malevich, Aleksei Kruchyonykh and others. It was the poetry of his contemporaries that partly inspired him to become a linguist.
ellauri192.html on line 77: Jakobson escaped from Prague in early March 1939 via Berlin for Denmark, where he was associated with Louis Hjelmslev's Copenhagen linguistic circle. He fled to Norway on 1 September 1939, and in 1940 walked across the border to Sweden, where he continued his work at the Karolinska Hospital (with works on footsores, aphasia and language competence). When Swedish colleagues feared a possible German occupation, he managed to leave on a cargo ship, together with Ernst Cassirer (the former rector of Hamburg University) to New York City in 1941 to become part of the wider community of intellectual émigrés who fled there.
ellauri192.html on line 81: His universalizing structuralist theory of phonology, based on a markedness hierarchy of distinctive features, achieved its canonical exposition in a book published in the United States in 1951, jointly authored by Roman Jakobson, C. Gunnar Fant and Morris Halle.
ellauri192.html on line 83: In his last decade, Jakobson maintained an office at the Massachusetts Institute of Technology, where he was an honorary Professor Emeritus. Jakobson died in Cambridge, Massachusetts on 18 July 1982. Näinköhän mä sen vanhana ukkelina 70-luvun lopulla? Voi olla, en muista nyt.
ellauri192.html on line 85: Influenced by the Organon-Model by Karl Bühler, Jakobson distinguishes six communication functions, each associated with a dimension or factor of the communication process [n.b. – Elements from Bühler's theory appear in the diagram below in yellow and pink, Jakobson's elaborations in blue]:
ellauri192.html on line 107: Toinen keskinkertaisuus, nobelisti nro 1 Sully Prudhomme oli Alfonsen kaveri. Sullyn kuolemasta on ristiriitaisia tietoja. Ranut sanoivat et hää kuoli subitement. Anglojen mukaan Sully Prudhomme suffered from a long, paralyzing illness and died at his home in Châtenay-Malabry in September of 1907. Joku alaruumiin halvaus sillä oli. Se kuoli poikamiehenä. Ettei vaan ollut kuppa silläkin.
ellauri192.html on line 113: The members of the Nobel jury were guided by the vague words written into the will of Alfred Nobel. The inventor stated that his prize “should go to the person who shall have produced in the field of Literature the most distinguished work of an idealistic tendency.” Wirsén believed that “idealistic tendency” meant of moral or good nature; however, as Burton Feldman reports, the mathematician Gösta "Ja ja de ä Gösta här" Mittag-Leffler, who was a friend of Nobel’s, attested that “the inventor intended ‘idealism’ to mean a skeptical, even satirical attitude to religion, royalty, marriage, and the social order in general.”
ellauri192.html on line 132: But Sully Prudhomme’s 1878 work, La Justice (Justice), is a bold poem indeed. Siinä on paljon optimismia ja idealismia, sydämen asiaa. Dyny-Alfred olisi ollut mielissään. Scientific truth and deeply felt art combine in Sully Prudhomme’s vision to come to the rescue of humankind. This idealism imbued with science is what drew the Nobel committee to award him their first literature prize. Parnassolaiset hurrasivat ja symbolistit jupisivat kateina..
ellauri192.html on line 208: Nous souffrons chaque jour la peine universelle, Me kärsitään joka päivä globaalia ikävää,
ellauri192.html on line 251: Nobel-skandaaleita
ellauri192.html on line 255: The Nobel Prize in Literature 1984 was awarded to Jaroslav Seifert "for his poetry which endowed with freshness, sensuality and rich inventiveness provides a liberating image of the indomitable spirit and versatility of man."
ellauri192.html on line 261: There is no objective measure, no slide rule for magnitude in literature. Balzac was convinced that Mrs. Ann Radcliffe, the purveyor of Gothic terror, was a finer writer than Stendhal, whom he admired. Tolstoy, one of the two writers who have freely refused the Prize - Sartre in 1964 was the other (Bob Dylan meant to be the 3rd until the Swedes upped the ante) - found Shakespeare's ''King Lear'' to be a puerile mess ''beneath serious criticism.'' (mitä se kieltämättä onkin, tai oikeammin setämiehen keitos). The only major fiction to come out of the American experience of World War II, James Gould Cozzens' fiction ''Guard of Honor,'' has fallen into oblivion, deservedly.
ellauri192.html on line 263: THE trouble, of course, is that the actual record of choices made by the Swedish Academy for the Nobel Prize in Literature has been capricious and, in too many cases, insulting to critical intelligence. Given the fact that no literary ranking can be either proved or falsified objectively; given the inevitable time lag of taste and renown behind the radical, private advance of genius; errors, oversight, delays in recognition until they guys were dead were unavoidable from the outset. But even when every allowance is made, the record of ''the bounty of Sweden'' (Yeats's candid phrase when he received the Nobel in 1923) is a poor one.
ellauri192.html on line 265: The very first selection was ominous. Both the name and the verse of Sully Prudhomme seem to herald those grounds of unctuous competence, of the official middle ground, so frequently adopted by the Nobel judges. But Prudhomme is by no means the pits. Take Bob Dylan for instance.
ellauri192.html on line 269: Taking into sympathetic account the widest margin of human error, is it possible to take seriously an institution and procedure that passes over the majority of the greatest novelists and renewers of prose in the modern age? James Joyce, Marcel Proust, Franz Kafka (whose presence towers over our sensual literature and of the meaning of a bug, quite a feat for a little man who one should not expect to tower over anything much), Thomas Hardy, Joseph Conrad, Henry James, Andre Malraux, Hermann Broch, Robert Musil, D. H. Lawrence, either escaped the notice of or were, on nomination, rejected by the Nobel committee. Can one defend a jury which prefers the art of Pearl Buck (1938) to that of, say, Virginia Woolf? Paul Claudel, a picee of shit whose dramas we can set fairly beside those of Aeschylus and of Shakespeare just to scare people, never received the accolade. Paul Heyse was chosen, not Bertolt Brecht. Galsworthy is a Nobel, not Carlo Emilio Gadda, one of the most original and inventive writers of fiction in this century. Who the fuck is he? Composer of In-a-Gadda-da-Vida? No that was Iron Butterfly, and a good piece it was indeed.
ellauri192.html on line 273: There are great, canonic names on the Nobel list, choices on which common sense and passionate alertness concur. I have mentioned Yeats. We find Anatole France, Kipling, Shaw, Thomas Mann, Andre Gide, T. S. Eliot, Pasternak, Faulkner, Hemingway, Seferis, Montale, Beckett and Solzhenitsyn (the last, I would guess, a titan among men even more, perhaps, than among writers; what I mean by this is he was tall but not much of a novelist). But place the two lists next to each other, and the cardinal truth springs to view: during these past 83 years, the award of the Nobel Prize in Literature has scored more misses than hits. With eminent exceptions, it is the uncrowned who are sovereign.
ellauri192.html on line 275: But why? It is because it is the Swedes that make the choice, not an internationally chosen jury of important influencers like The New York Times. The disturbingly fallible performance of the Nobel committee for literature is the inevitable mirror of the patrician parochialism of the self-perpetuating selectors.
ellauri192.html on line 283: THIS same bias extends to literary forms. We look in vain on the Nobel register for the experimental, formally subversive, controversial movements and texts that distinguish modernism. No Surrealist has been rewarded, no major Expressionist, no poet or playwright out of the seminal world of Dada or absurdism (Andre Breton, Hugo Ball, Gertrude Stein). The boat is not to be rocked. On august occasion, lyric eroticism and even sorrowful homosexuality are admitted to Parnassus. Radical sexual play in style, in ''amoral'' revaluation, are vetoed. The liberating sensualists, such as John Cowper Powys, supreme in English fiction after Hardy, are left out. Colette is nowhere to be found. Her heir in sensuous contrivance, Nabokov, was blackballed.
ellauri192.html on line 287: Lastly, there is the rumor of the blacklist. No outside observer can show that any such list exists, let alone how and when it was explicitly arrived at. But there are stubborn, unsettling indications. Behind them stands the enigmatic figure and afterlife of Dag Hammerskjold. In one or two cases, the choice of laureate seems to have been largely his. His chill displeasures seem not only to have had great influence, but to persist beyond the grave. The list of lepers, for motives which may, in some masked degree, go back to Hammarskjold's own politics and arcane sexuality, is rumored to include Graham Greene, G"unter Grass and Borges, as it did Malraux (passed over, to de Gaulle's just anger, in favor of a French poet-diplomat close to Hammarskjold, viz. Saint-John Perse). The mere fact that the Nobel Prize in Literature has long passed Borges by suffices to put the whole institution in doubt. But whether any such blacklist is real remains baffled conjecture.
ellauri192.html on line 291: In the hours since the Swedish Academy announced Olga Tokarczuk and Peter Handke as newly-minted winners of the Nobel Prize in Literature, much has been made of the contrast between then.
ellauri192.html on line 295: Handke, the 2019 winner, is an Austrian writer almost as well known for his vocal defense of Serbian war criminal Slobodan Milosevic as for his highly-regarded novels, plays and films.
ellauri192.html on line 297: While Tokarczuk’s win has been widely lauded — The Guardian declared her “the dreadlocked feminist winner the Nobel needed” (aargh! will some future prize go to Estonia's own bluewig girl Sofi Oxanen?) — Handke’s provoked immediate and widespread displeasure. PEN America, an organization that advocates for writers’ liberty, wrote that it was “dumbfounded by the selection of a writer who has used his public voice to undercut historical truth and offer public succor to perpetrators of genocide.” The Slovenian public intellectual Slavoj Žižek told the Guardian that “In 2014, Handke called for the Nobel to be abolished, saying it was a ‘false canonisation’ of literature. The fact that he got it now proves that he was right.”
ellauri192.html on line 301: 2014 also marked the release of Tokarczuk’s most ambitious work, “The Books of Jacob,” the novel that set off much of the rancor directed at her by Polish nationalists. The book, which has yet to appear in English, is centered on the historical figure of Jakub Frank, a Jewish-born 18th-century religious leader. Frank, believed to have been born with the name Jakub Leibowicz, oversaw a messianic sect that incorporated significant portions of Christian practice into Judaism; he led mass baptisms of his followers. As Ruth Franklin reported in a New Yorker profile this past summer, Tokarczuk spent almost a decade researching Frank and the Poland in which he lived. The result is a book that, by the account of those who have read it, delivers a picture of the many intricate and unpredictable ways in which the story of Poland is tied to the story of its Jews. “There’s no Polish culture without Jewish culture,” Tokarczuk told Franklin. What else is new, asks Isaac Singer. Tokarczuk is not a Jewess, Tokarczuk considers herself a disciple of Carl Jung and cites his psychology as an inspiration for her literary work.
ellauri192.html on line 303: The novel’s release shortly predated an escalation in Polish nationalism tied to the Law and Justice party’s ascent to power in 2015. But the forces that fueled that escalation were already prevalent. When Tokarczuk accepted the Nike Prize, the country’s highest literary honor, for “The Books of Jacob,” she said in a speech that the country had “committed horrendous acts as colonizers, as a national majority that suppressed the minority, as slaveowners, and as the murderers of Jews.” She was quickly inundated by threats so alarming that her publishers briefly hired bodyguards. In the five years since, she has witnessed the Law and Justice party take an increasingly hard line on censoring certain conversations about Poland’s relationship with Jews. In 2016, the government began a campaign against the Princeton historian Jan Gross, known for his groundbreaking work on the massacre at Jedwabne, in which Poles murdered 1,600 of their Jewish neighbors. In 2018, the Law and Justice party’s government made it illegal to blame Poland or Polish nationals for Nazi crimes. POLIN, a groundbreaking Polish museum of Jewish history, has been leader-less for five months, as its director, who oversaw a number of exhibits highly critical of Poland’s policy toward Jews, awaits official reappointment — despite having been re-approved for the job.
ellauri192.html on line 305: “The subject of my book [‘The Books of Jacob’] — a multicultural Poland — was not comfortable for proponents of this new version of history,” Tokarczuk told PEN Transmissions, a journal run by the English iteration of PEN, in May, 2018. She was taken by surprise by the amount of rage the book provoked — not to mention her comment on receiving the Nike sneakers. But rather than retreat, she has continued to speak out on behalf of the communities she sees her government as wishing to sideline. In a January op-ed for The New York Times following a Polish radical’s on-air murder of the open-minded young Gdansk mayor Pawel Adamowicz, Tokarczuk wrote of a Polish populist narrative that “scapegoats… the so-called crazy leftists, queer-lovers, Germans, Jews, European Union puppets, feminists, liberals and anyone who supports immigrants.”
ellauri192.html on line 311: The Polish government, Tokarczuk told PEN Transmissions, “wants to control and define history, to rewrite the memory about our past, obliterating any dark sides.”
ellauri192.html on line 315: Bob Dylan was given the prize in 2016, and promptly showed the literary bad boys how a real rock star behaves, treating the academy with sustained contempt for months and piling humiliation on to the ridicule his award had already invited.
ellauri192.html on line 321: Since 1901 to 1971, there have been 787 writers coming from different parts of the world nominated for the Nobel Prize in Literature, 67 of which were awarded the prize and Albert Schweitzer was awarded by Nobel Peace Prize on 1953. 12 more writers from these nominees were awarded after 1971 and Elie Wiesel was awarded by Nobel Peace Prize on 1986. Only 72 women had been nominated for the prize starting with Malwida von Meysenburg who was nominated once for the year 1901 and 6 of them have been awarded after all. 10% of the nominees, 5% of the awards. Bra jobb, kulturprofilerna! Kom igen!
ellauri192.html on line 323: Though the following list consists of notable literary figures deemed worthy of the prize, there have been some celebrated writers who were not considered nor even nominated such as Anton Chekhov, Jules Verne, Mark Twain, Robert Hugh Benson, Arthur Conan Doyle, Alexander Blok, Marcel Proust, Joseph Conrad, Rainer Maria Rilke, Federico García Lorca, Lu Xun, Sarat Chandra Chattopadhyay, Antonio Machado, Francis Scott Fitzgerald, James Joyce, Virginia Woolf, Simone Weil, Willa Cather, George Orwell, Galaktion Tabidze, Richard Wright, Flannery O'Connor, Langston Hughes and Jack Kerouac.
ellauri192.html on line 325: Silti jää maxumuurin taaxe arvoituxexi mikä suututti New York Timesin niin paljon kun Seifert sai noobelin 1984? Pitikö sen mennä taas amerikkalaisille? Oliko Seifertin syy että se oli aeeka mitätön? Joku piti saada vauhdittamaan Puolan johdon vaihtoa. Los Angeles Times sanoi Jaron nekrologissa että sen ansio oli olla yrittäjähenkinen ja positiivinen:
ellauri192.html on line 327: His poetry, said James Ragan, director of the USC graduate school’s professional writing program, “was at all times optimistic, reflecting a championing of the human self. I think that’s primarily why he was awarded the Nobel Prize, because he suggested a new liberated spirit in writing (behind the Iron Curtain) after the Stalin era. Although he was a Communist as a youth, he became disillusioned with the party in the late 1920s. Thereafter, he was in and out of party favor during the turbulent decades that followed in Czechoslovakia. The state-run news agency, in announcing his death Friday, described him as “a prominent Czech poet, national artist (and) winner of the 1984 Nobel Prize for Literature.”
ellauri192.html on line 333: They probably are no wiser than a cricket’s chirrup.
ellauri192.html on line 339: STOCKHOLM, Sweden 2009 - Americans Joyce Carol Oates and Philip Roth join Israel's Amos Oz at the top of the buzz surrounding the Nobel Prize in literature, especially after the most prominent judge broke from his predecessor and said U.S. writers are worthy of the coveted award.
ellauri192.html on line 344: Sometimes even those feints aren't enough. The academy suspected a leak last year when Le Clezio surged to No. 1 in Nobel betting a day before the announcement.
ellauri192.html on line 345: "We have taken a number of measures to see that it isn't repeated this year," said Englund, who used to work in military intelligence. He declined to describe the measures. Military type intelligence is just what is called for in the job.
ellauri192.html on line 349: This year, Danish literature professor Anne-Marie Mai revealed she had nominated Bob Dylan because she was upset about Englund's predecessor's critical remarks about the nonexistence of American literature.
ellauri192.html on line 409: Bob Dylan 25/1 (CHECK)
ellauri192.html on line 531: The award of the Nobel Prize for Literature in 1984 to Jaroslav Seifert — a poet identified with reformism and not favored by the Husák regime—was a bright spot in an otherwise bleak cultural scene of the time. Tuttua ruozalaisten peukutusta länkkäreille taas. Philip Rothin kotizhekki, beatlesien näköinen Ivan Klima ei sopinut ruozalaiseen klimaattiin, eikä Philipkään.
ellauri192.html on line 641: Seifert was awarded the Nobel Prize in Literature in 1984. Due to bad health, he was not present at the award ceremony, and so his daughter received the Nobel Prize in his name. Even though it was a matter of great importance, there was only a brief remark of the award in the state-controlled media. He died in 1986, aged 84, and was buried at the municipal cemetery in Kralupy nad Vltavou (where his maternal grandparents originated from). Not in the Jewish cemetery, perish the thought!
ellauri192.html on line 645: Few Americans have ever heard of Jaroslav Seifert, whose poems are virtually unobtainable in the United States, but scholars who are acquainted with his work said yesterday that the Czech poet fully deserves the Nobel Prize awarded to him. Thogh an old commie, he is (or was) now staunchly on our side.
ellauri192.html on line 647: ''Seifert is a great poet who embodies the majestic tradition of Czech poetry - he deserves the Nobel Prize,'' said Maria Banerjee, who wrote the Seifert entry for the Encyclopedia of World Literature. Mrs. Banerjee, who hails from Bangla Desh (just joking, he is Maria Nemcova married to a Banerjee), is a specialist in Slavic literature, who teaches Russian literature at Smith College, added that Mr. Seifert "is (or was) the best of a remarkable group of poets who came into prominence in the 1920's."
ellauri192.html on line 651: George Gibian, a professor of Russian and comparative literature at Cornell University, agrees that Mr. Seifert deserves the Nobel. ''I'm glad the world has caught up with him,'' he said. ''He is (or was) the grand old man of Czech poetry, a combination of Robert Frost and E.E. Cummings. He deserves it for his recent poetry, but especially for his poetry of the 1920's and 30's.''
ellauri192.html on line 665: Mr. Seifert's memoirs were published in English in September 1981 by sixty-eight publishers, plus in the Czech language by a Czech emigre publishing house in Canada, and they were published in several installments in a Czech-language journal. A portion of the memoirs were published in English in the 1983 issue of Cross Currents, a yearbook of Central European Culture, published by the Department of Slavic Langagues at the University of Michigan. The selection, titled "Russian Bliny," is about Roman Jakobson, a Russian scholar who emigrated to Czechoslovakia after World War I and came to the United States during World War II. In actual fact, they were Ukrainian bliny, another case of cultural appropriation.
ellauri192.html on line 680: The Trubetsk (Troubchevsk) town was referred to in the Old East Slavic poem The Tale of Igor's Campaign where, among others, Vsevolod Svyatoslavich, the Prince of Trubetsk and of Kursk, was glorified. In 1185 the Trubetsk army fought against Cumans. Trubetsk on Bryanskin oblastissa, jossain Ison ja Valko-Venäjän rajalla.
ellauri192.html on line 685: During World War II, Trubchevsk was occupied by the German Army from October 9, 1941 to September 18, 1943. Prior to the war, about 137 Jews lived in Trubchevsk. Most of the Jews were craftsmen, including cobblers and carpenters. The town was occupied by German forces in early October 1941. By that time, more than half of the Jews fled or evacuated. The Jews from the Trubchevsk district were gathered in a Klub for 3 days and shot afterwards at the edge of the village. Their bodies were burnt. In total, according to the Soviet archives, 751 Soviet citizens perished due to bad treatment or as a result of shooting in the entire Trubchevsk district. Aside from Jews, mentally ill children and adults were exterminated as well. The population is about 15K. There are very few notable buildings in the town.
ellauri192.html on line 700: Due to its sizeable length, the Dnieper River has as many as 32,000 tributaries including the Sozh, Desna, Trubizh, Bilozerka, Drut, Berezina, and Prypiat Rivers. The mouth of this important waterway is located at the Dnieper Delta while the river basin in the Ukraine and Belarus measures some 194,595 square miles. The Dnieper River passes through numerous urban centers such as the Russian cities of Smolensk and Dorogobuzh as well as Mogilev in Belarus and Kiev, Cherkasy, Dnipro, and Zaporizhia in Ukraine.
ellauri192.html on line 708: Chinese sleeper eli Amur sleeper eli rohmutokko (Perccottus glenii) on rohmutokkojen (Odontobutidae) heimoon kuuluva kalalaji. Se on sukunsa Perccottus ainoa laji. Rohmutokko on haitallinen vieraslaji koko Euroopan unionin alueella ja kuuluu Suomen maa- ja metsätalousministeriön kansalliseen vieraslajistrategiaan. Se on tehokas saalistaja ja vähentää lammikkojen alkuperäisiä sammakkoeläimiä ja muita pohjaeläimiä. Venäjällä se on suosittu saaliskala. Tokko siitä Euroopassa enää eroon päästään, vaikka Ukraina, Ruozi ja Suomi jäisivätkin puolueettomixi.
ellauri192.html on line 732: Frontman Siarhei Mikhalok announced mid-March 2014 that the group would cease to exist the next 1 September. The groups farewell concert was given in the Valeriy Lobanovskyi Dynamo Stadium in Kyiv, Ukraine on 26 August. Mayor of Kyiv Vitali Klitschko was present at this concert. Vitali Volodymyrovytš Klytško (ukr. Віталій Володимирович Кличко, s. 19. heinäkuuta 1971) on Kiovan pormestari ja ukrainalainen poliitikko sekä entinen raskaansarjan nyrkkeilijä ja potkunyrkkeilijä. Klytško on voittanut maailmanmestaruuden kummassakin lajissaan. Hän työskenteli Ukrainan armeijan lähitaistelukouluttajana ennen kuin aloitti ammattilaisuransa vuonna 1997. Klytško on myös opiskellut Kiovan yliopistossa liikunta- ja terveystieteitä sekä väitellyt tohtoriksi. Klytško on 203 cm pitkä ja painaa noin 115 kg. Mixei näitä kärhämiä ratkaista kazintaisteluna? Klytsko "pistäisi" pienikokoisen Putinin halki poikki ja pinoon toinen käsi selän takana, nyt kun sen housuistakin puuttuu musta vyö. Vaikka Lukashenka olis auttamassa. Sale ja Macron menis samantien ihan suupalana.
ellauri192.html on line 735: - What language do these dudes sing in, does anyone know? Belarussian or russian? Probably worth a mention in the article.
ellauri192.html on line 816: The anti-capitalist message is somewhat confusing though, given that Belarus is probably the least capitalist country in Europe. Maybe it helps get the song past the censor? I have no idea what to make of this tripped-out critique of materialism and pop culture from Belarusian rock band Lyapis Trubetskoy. It’s gaudy, over-the-top and visually chaotic.
ellauri192.html on line 826: With the Lapis band Mikhalok performed at Euromaidan in support of the revolution, and his song Voiny Svetu became the unofficial anthem of Euromaidan. This led to Mikhalok having problems in Russia - MiKhalok was accused of supporting nationalists.
ellauri192.html on line 830: The musician explained that the support of revolutionary events in Ukraine by Liapis Trubetskoy is negatively perceived by authorities in Belarus and Russia, which is an obstacle to the creative process. Thus he and his producer, without giving up the Belarusian citizenship, decided to get permanent residence in Ukraine.
ellauri192.html on line 835: It's painful but the problem of the Russian Federation is not Putin, but the Russians, serving their patron with obsequiousness. Nowadays Putin is gaining more and more support with ordinary people. And although I don't watch Russian television nowadays, since it's all lies, there's one piece of truth in the news nowadays - Putin is gaining support. Regardless the fact that lots of Russians still don't have running water in their houses and go to the toilet outside the house, many can't find a job that can support their family, they feel pride for Putin who doesn't give away Crimea.
ellauri192.html on line 857: Brooks was born on June 28, 1926, in Brooklyn, New York City, to Kate (née Brookman) and Max Kaminsky, and grew up in Williamsburg. His father's family were Jewish people from Gdańsk, Poland; his mother's family were Jews from Kyiv, in the Pale of Settlement of the Russian Empire (present-day Ukraine). In 2021, Brooks published a memoir, All About Me!.During his teens, he legally changed his name to Mel Brooks, influenced by his mother´s maiden name Brookman, after being confused with trumpeter Max Kaminsky. "And I'm sure a lot of my comedy is based on anger and hostility. Growing up in Williamsburg, I learned to clothe it in comedy to spare myself problems—like a punch in the face."
ellauri192.html on line 859: The Twelve Chairs (Russian: Двенадцать стульев, tr. Dvenadtsat stulyev) is a classic satirical novel by the Odessan Soviet authors Ilf and Petrov, published in 1928. Its plot follows characters attempting to obtain jewry hidden in a chair. A sequel was published in 1931. The novel has been adapted to other media, primarily film. Kirjoittajat oli "ihan nulikoita": Ilf 30, Katajev 26. Katajev kaatui suuressa isänmaallisessa sodassa 30-vuotiaana. Joten sepä venyi!
ellauri192.html on line 861: In the Soviet Union in 1927, a former Marshal of Nobility, Ippolit Matveyevich "Kisa" Vorobyaninov, works as the registrar of marriages and deaths in a sleepy provincial town. His mother-in-law reveals on her deathbed that her family jewry was hidden from the Bolsheviks in one of the twelve chairs from the family’s dining room set. Those chairs, along with all other personal property, were taken away by the Communists after the Russian Revolution. Vorobyaninov wants to find the treasure. The “smooth operator” and con-man Ostap Bender forces Kisa to become his partner, as they set out to find the chairs. Bender's street smarts and charm are invaluable to the reticent Kisa, and Bender comes to dominate the enterprise. Father Fyodor (who had known of the treasure from the confession of Vorobyaninov's mother-in-law), their obsessed rival in the hunt for the treasure, follows a bad lead, runs out of money, ends up trapped on a mountain-top, and loses his sanitary pad. Ostap remains unflappable, and his mastery of human nature eliminates all obstacles, but Vorobyaninov steadily deteriorates.
ellauri192.html on line 863: They slowly acquire each of the chairs, but no treasure is found. Kisa and Ostap finally discover the location of the last chair. Vorobyaninov murders Ostap to keep all the loot for himself, but discovers that the jews have already been found and used to build the new public recreation center in which the chair was found, a symbol of the new society. Angered, Vorobyaninov too loses his sanitary pad.
ellauri192.html on line 865: Ilf ja Petrov lainasivat usein Sherlock Holmes-skenestä paitsi yksittäisiä yksityiskohtia, myös kokonaisia juonia. Bender ja Vorobjaninov menevät Jaltaan luettuaan sanomalehtiartikkelin, joka raportoi Columbus-teatterin syksyn kiertueesta Krimillä. Vaelluksen viimeisestä vaiheesta kertovassa luvussa kirjallisilla aiheilla leikkiminen yhdistetään todellisten tapahtumien kuvaukseen.
ellauri192.html on line 886: Ilya Ilf (Ilya Arnoldovich Feinsilberg) (Russian: Илья Арнольдович Файнзильберг, 1897-1937) and Yevgeny Petrov (Yevgeniy Petrovich Katayev or Russian: Евгений Петрович Катаев, 1902-1942) were two Ukrainian prose authors of the 1920s and 1930s.They did much of their writing together, and are almost always referred to as "Ilf and Petrov". Bet Ilf was Jewish. Ilya Arnoldovich Ilf (born Iehiel-Leyb Aryevich Faynzilberg, Russian: Иехи́ел-Лейб Арьевич Фа́йнзильберг[1]) (15 October [O.S. 3 October] 1897 in Odessa – 13 April 1937, Moscow), was a popular Soviet journalist and writer of Jewish origin who usually worked in collaboration with Yevgeni Petrov during the 1920s and 1930s. Their duo was known simply as Ilf and Petrov. Together they published two popular comedy novels The Twelve Chairs (1928) and The Little Golden Calf (1931), as well as a satirical book Odnoetazhnaya Amerika (often translated as Little Golden America) that documented their journey through the United States between 1935 and 1936.
ellauri192.html on line 900: This book should be noted as a very significant work. Americans and America would benefit greatly if they considered these observations. – Allentown Morning Call
ellauri194.html on line 4:
ellauri194.html on line 110: Route 66:n kuolinisku tuli vuonna 1956 kun presidentti Dwight Eisengaard allekirjoitti uuden Interstate Highway Act -lain. Euroopassa uusia tuulia haistellut Eisenhower oli ollut hyvin vaikuttunut Saksan Autobahneista. Eisengaard visioi vastaavanlaisen suuren ajonopeuden sallivan tieverkoston Yhdysvaltoihin.
ellauri194.html on line 114: Vuonna 1946 jazz-säveltäjä ja pianisti Bobby Troup kirjoitti tunnetuimman teoksensa, Route 66, ajettuaan itse reitin Kaliforniaan. Kappaleen nimen keksi nokkelasti Troupen ensimmäisen vaimo Cynthia, joka oli ollut mukana automatkalla. Toisella automatkalla olikin jo vähemmän mäkättävä vaimo. Hän esitteli kappaleensa Nat King Colelle, joka sai siitä erään suurimmista hiteistään. Laulusta on tullut hitti myös Chuck Berrylle ja sen ovat levyttäneet myös monet tunnetut artistit, kuten The Rolling Stones, Depeche Mode ja Manhattan Transfer. Suomalaisista maailmanluokan artisteista M. A. Numminen on esittänyt kappaleen nimeltä ”Route 66”. Eero and the Boysin coveri 1964 oli huomattavasti parempi. MA Numminen on ylimainostettu pelle, se laulaa vielä paljon huonommin kuin Bob Dylan. Jussi Raittinen levytti vuonna 1975 kappaleesta suomenkielisen version ”Valtatie 66”, joka ei tosin kerro Route 66:sta vaan Suomen Kantatie 66:sta (Orivesi–Lapua). Samaisen kappaleen on levyttänyt myös "Sami Saari " Heti vapaa-levylleen, vuonna 2009. Sami Saaresta ei kyllä ole kuullut kukaan.
ellauri194.html on line 119: Tie antoi nimensä myös suositulle TV-sarjalle Route 66. Sarjaa tuotti CBS vuodesta 1960 vuoteen 1964. Sarjan päähenkilöt Martin Milner ja George Maharis olivat ”Tod” ja ”Buzz”, kaksi nuorukaista, jotka ajelivat "Corvettellaan" etsien seikkailuja valtatieltä. Lähinnä löytyi roadkillejä. Todellisuudessa sarjassa ei liikuttu oikean Route 66:n reittiä edes fiktiivisesti, saati kuvauksissa. Tekijänoikeussyistä tuotantoyhtiö luopui ajatuksesta käyttää tietä eikä sarjan tunnusmusiikkina kuultu Bobby Troupin kuuluisaa sävellystä, vaan sarjaan teki oman sävellyksen Nelson Riddle. Riddlen pianoriffeissä voi kuulla plagiaatin Troupilta.
ellauri194.html on line 252: As one nomadic people followed another on the Eurasian steppes, so the identification of Gog and Magog shifted. In the 9th and 10th centuries these kingdoms were identified by some with the lands of the Khazars, a Turkic people whose leaders had converted to Judaism and whose empire dominated Central Asia–the 9th-century monk Christian of Stavelot referred to Gazari, said of the Khazars that they were "living in the lands of Gog and Magog" and noted that they were "circumcised and observing all [the laws of] Judaism". Arab traveler ibn Fadlan also reported of this belief, writing around 921 he recorded that "Some hold the opinion that Gog and Magog are the Khazars".
ellauri194.html on line 257: Europeans in Medieval China reported findings from their travels to the Mongol Empire. Some accounts and maps began to place the "Caspian Mountains", and Gog and Magog, just outside the Great Wall of China. The Tartar Relation, an obscure account of Friar Carpini's 1240s journey to Mongolia, is unique in alleging that these Caspian Mountains in Mongolia, "where the Jews called Gog and Magog by their fellow countrymen are said to have been shut in by Alexander", were moreover purported by the Tartars to be magnetic, causing all iron equipment and weapons to fly off toward the mountains on approach. In 1251, the French friar André de Longjumeau informed his king that the Mongols originated from a desert further east, and an apocalyptic Gog and Magog ("Got and Margoth") people dwelled further beyond, confined by the mountains. In the map of Sharif Idrisi, the land of Gog and Magog is drawn in the northeast corner (beyond Northeast Asia) and enclosed. Some medieval European world maps also show the location of the lands of Gog and Magog in the far northeast of Asia (and the northeast corner of the world).
ellauri194.html on line 275: In the Borgia map, a copper-engraved world map probably produced in Southern Germany c. 1430, the most eastern part contains two fortified regions depicting Gog and Magog, with the following Latin inscriptions:
ellauri194.html on line 291: In the Islamic apocalyptic tradition, the end of the world would be preceded by the release of Gog and Magog, whose destruction by God in a single night would usher in the Day of Resurrection. Reinterpretation did not generally continue after Classical times, but the needs of the modern world have produced a new body of apocalyptic literature in which Gog and Magog are identified as Communist Russia and China. One problem these writers have had to confront is the barrier holding Gog and Magog back, which is not to be found in the modern world: the answer varies, some writers saying that Gog and Magog were the Mongols and that the wall is now gone, others that both the wall and Gog and Magog are invisible. Why it is the iron curtain of course, the pay wall that stops money transfers between east and west. It is Google of MAGA what else!
ellauri194.html on line 316: Sedgwick's conclusion from a long-term project of anti-homophobic analysis is Axiom 1 – "people are different from each other".
ellauri194.html on line 442: Stram kurs bildades 2017 och enligt stiftelsen Expo går partiet budskap ut på att skylla i stort sett alla samhällsproblem på islam och muslimer.
ellauri194.html on line 535: - Abhijit Banerjee, Nobel laureate economist
ellauri194.html on line 672: - Abhijit Banerjee (s. 1961), intialais-yhdysvaltalainen taloustieteilijä, Nobelin taloustieteen palkinnon saaja
ellauri194.html on line 733: oberts_2011_Shankbone_3.JPG/220px-Julia_Roberts_2011_Shankbone_3.JPG" height="200px" />
ellauri194.html on line 735: Jenni Banerjee on Suomen Julie Roberts. Luupäistä saisi hyvän aisaparin jos omistaisi pienet kiesit.
ellauri194.html on line 764: For the Egyptian state to instrumentalize "human trafficking" charges to exert control over the expression & socioeconomic mobility of young women is deeply disturbing. There are real and serious cases of human trafficking that must be prosecuted--these TikTok cases are not it.
ellauri194.html on line 777: (October 2018) Five Egyptian women shared their stories of sexual harassment and abuse.
ellauri194.html on line 997: Cabinet minister Jacob Rees-Mogg tonight attempted to downplay the impact of Mr Harper's dramatic intervention.
ellauri194.html on line 1011: Published October 7th 2017
ellauri194.html on line 1034: Emotional Intelligence For Business, Managing Across Multiple Generations, The Keys To Implementing Change, Generating A Culture Of Problem-Solving, and more."
ellauri194.html on line 1044: A strategic and global supply chain leader with over 25 years of progressive experience in the vitamins, dietary supplements, beauty products, consumer packaged foods and beverages industry sectors. Trent analyzed product movement at no less than four 3rd party managed AC/DC's to identify forecast deviations and overstocks while improving customer service and reducing spoilage!
ellauri194.html on line 1048: Privately-held since 1983, A&M is a leading global professional services firm that delivers business performance improvement, turnaround management and advisory services to organizations seeking to transform operations, catapult growth and accelerate results through decisive action. Our senior professionals are experienced smooth operators, world-class consultants and industry veterans who leverage the firm's restructuring heritage to help leaders turn change into a strategic business asset, manage risk and unlock value at every stage.
ellauri196.html on line 4:
ellauri196.html on line 53: Ioannes Piscator (natus die 27 Martii 1546 Argentorati - obiit die 26 Iulii 1625 Herbornae in Provincia Giessa) fuit magister artium, professor ac theologus Germanicus. A piscatore habemus opus: Aphorismi doctrinae christianae (Herborn 1619).
ellauri196.html on line 188: Auden rakensi Tolkienille mainetta Amerikassa, oli opiskellut itse Oxfordissa, outo hyypiö joka söi ja kämppäili tuttujen kotona, missä yöksi kasasi peitokseen kaiken litteän irtaimen mitä huoneessa oli patjat matot, taulut seiniltä. Auden, joka ei saanut ruotsalaisilta Nobelia koska halveerasi Hammarsjköldiä ansaitusti messias-kompleksista - Auden kävi sittemmin Tolkienin kotona ja puisteli päätään: olipa ikävä ja ummehtunut huusholli.
ellauri196.html on line 293: Some idiot suggests that Auden's most famous poem, ‘Funeral Blues’, is ‘misread’ as sincere elegy when it was intended to be a send-up or parody of public obituaries. What an infantile idea! Rather, Auden's point is: We must make fun of one another AND die. Auden oli mielestäni suht hyvä, vahinko vaan että se näyttää Lewisin naziapulaiselta.
ellauri196.html on line 470: Tämä tuli mieleen tosta Anatole Francen Pingviinien saaresta. Kauan sitten iäkäs munkki purjehti kohti Pohjoisnapaa ja löysi sieltä Pingviinien saaren. Huononäköisenä hän luuli saaren asukkaita ihmisiksi ja kastoi heidät kristinuskoon. Jumalalle ei taivaallisen neuvonpidon jälkeen jäänyt muuta vaihtoehtoa kuin muuttaa pingviinikansa oikeiksi ihmisiksi. Pingviinien saari hinattiin lautalla Euroopan läheisyyteen, ja näin pingviinit ottivat paikkansa eurooppalaisten kansakuntien joukossa. Nobelisti Anatole Francen ilmeisen mieluisa tehtävä on ollut kronikoida pingviinien myöhemmän historian vaiheet yksien kansien väliin.
ellauri196.html on line 481: Tobleronepatukan nuolentaa
ellauri196.html on line 633: Lewis argued that the AFL was too heavily oriented toward traditional craftsmen, and was overlooking the opportunity to organize millions of semiskilled workers, especially those in industrial factories that made automobiles, rubber, glass and steel. In 1935 Lewis led the dissenting unions in forming a new Congress for Industrial Organization (CIO) within the AFL. Both the new CIO industrial unions, and the older AFL crafts unions grew rapidly after 1935. In 1936 union members enthusiastically supported Roosevelt's landslide reelection. Proposals for the creation of an independent labor party were rejected.
ellauri196.html on line 641: The percentage of workers belonging to a union (or total labor union "density") varies by country. In 2020 it was 10.8% in the United States, compared to 20.1% in 1983. From a global perspective, in 2016 the US had the fifth lowest trade union density of the 36 OECD member nations.
ellauri196.html on line 643: Union workers average 10-30% higher pay than non-union in the United States after controlling for individual, job, and labor market characteristics.
ellauri196.html on line 657: Elokuva kertoo järjestäytymättömien ahtaajien väkivaltaisesta ja korruptoituneesta elämästä. Sataman seutua hallitsee järjestäytynyt ay-rikollisuus; sen näkyvimpiä hahmoja ovat Johnny Friendly (Lee J. Cobb) ja hänen apulainensa Charley Malloy (Rod Steiger). Charleyn veli Terry Malloy (Marlon Brando) on myös mukana rikollisjärjestön toiminnassa. Terry tapatuttaa epämiellyttäviä kysymyksiä kyselleen ystävänsä houkuttelemalla hänet katolle josta hänet työnnetään alas. Myöhemmin Terry tapaa murhatun miehen sisaren, Edie Doylen (Eva Marie Saint) ja rakastuu tähän. Terry alkaa katua tekemisiään ja rikollisjärjestöön kuulumista.
ellauri196.html on line 694: In Songs My Mother Taught Me, Brando wrote that he met Marilyn Monroe at a party where she played piano, unnoticed by anybody else there, that they had an affair and maintained an intermittent relationship for many years, and that he received a telephone call from her several days after she died. He also claimed numerous other romances, although he did not discuss his marriages, his wives, or his children in his autobiography.
ellauri196.html on line 738: Hermeettinen runoilija Montale tuli vastaan Hoblan tiistairistikossa. Kumpikaan ei meistä ollut siitä kuullutkaan! Piti taas kerran googlata. Tai hei, kyllä Montale oli mainittu noobelkolleegansa Guasimodon riitaveikkona albumissa 62, en vaan muistanut. Se oli aika pulska kaveri joka pyrki oopperalaulajaxi huonolla menestyxellä. Mixi ääneni ei soi se huokasi kuin Hilja Haahti 7 vuoden lauluopintojen jälkeen maitojunassa.
ellauri196.html on line 740: Montale ha scritto relativamente poco. Il poeta può solo dire "ciò che non siamo": è la negatività esistenziale vissuta dall'uomo novecentesco dilaniato dal divenire storico. Pieni negatiivisuus ei ole ylläri, kun muistaa maailmansodat. Vaikkei tää 21. vuosisata juuri näytä positiivisemmalta. Il poeta crede di trovare una risposta, una soluzione al problema del "male di vivere": ad esempio, frutti di mare o alcune figure di donne. Montale esalta lo stoicismo etico di chi compie in qualsiasi situazione storica e politica il proprio dovere. Perche no il epicurismo? Tärkeintä sille oli la ricerca di propria dignità. No se pääsikin elinkautisexi senaattorixi. Eli taas tätä tuttua: tiukka mutru huuleen ja selkä vastatuuleen. Paska reisu mutta tulipahan tehtyä. Se trendas sotavuosina.
ellauri196.html on line 802: Eugenio Montale ebbe una visione fortemente idealizzata dell’amore: la sua concezione della donna ricorda la tradizione del dolce stil novo e della donna angelo. La poesia Morgana è l’ultima della raccolta Quaderno di quattro anni, pubblicata nel 1977. Järbällä oli noobel rintapielessä, senaattorin hattu ja paxu lompakko, helppo on lempeä pyytää. Vanha ja lihavakin runoilija osaa vielä lurittaa, jos silmään sattuu oikein kainaloinen nuori kana. Luonto on suunnitellut niin, että ruumiikas voi vielä bylsiä: nivusiin ei kerry läskiä.
ellauri196.html on line 842: Onko runous vielä mahdollista v 1975? What has been the contribution of dynamite to the centuries-long diatribe on the meaning of life? I refer to human life and not to the appearance of the amino-acids, tarkentaa Montane Nobel-puheessa.
ellauri196.html on line 853: So-called lyrics is at work, self-proclaimed poets like Bob Dylan fall into step with new times. Poetry becomes acoustic guitar and visual effects again, as it was in the times of Erato. The words splash in all directions, like the explosion of dynamite, there is no true meaning, but a verbal earthquake with many epicenters. Decipherment is not necessary, in many cases the aid of the psychoanalyst may help.
ellauri196.html on line 900: Elfriede Jelinek, an Austrian Jew, won the Nobel in Literature in 2004. According to the committee, she got it for revealing the absurdity of society´s cliches and their subjugating power. Take that, society´s cliches! One Swedish Academy member wasn´t exactly a fan. He quit in a fit, claiming that Jelinek´s writing is "whining, unenjoyable public pornography". Bet if it had been enjoyable private pornography, then his stance would have been different.
ellauri196.html on line 902: Jelinek, born in the eastern Austrian town of Mürzzuschlag on October 20, 1946, grew up in Vienna. As a young woman, she dealt with her father´s neuropathy, mother´s psychopathy and her own mental problems. Under the influence of her "demonic" mother, Jelinek said she was "trained" as a child prodigy in dance and music. She said she began writing to escape her mother´gs patronizing, dominating behavior.
ellauri196.html on line 906: Jelinek syntyi Mürzzuschlagissa, mutta kasvoi Wienissä. Hänen isänsä Friedrich Jelinek oli tšekinjuutalainen kemisti ja äiti Olga Ilona (o.s. Buchner) romaniansaksalainen ohjaaja. Nobelisti Montale ei pitänyt ohjaajista. En minäkään, kaikki tuntemani ovat olleet paskiaisia.
ellauri196.html on line 913: Manchmal vulgär, manchmal jugendlich-trotzig; hin und wieder obszön, häufig auch recht kühl. Die Gedichte als ihre frühesten Arbeiten sind weitgehend unbekannt und kaum besprochen. Dabei löste schon die erste Gedichtpublikation in der Zeitschrift der katholischen Jugend Aspekte 1967 einen kleinen Skandal aus. Die redaktionelle Verantwortliche Heide Pils wurde entlassen. Begründung: sittliche Gefährdung der jungen Leser, insbesondere der Priesterseminaristen..
ellauri197.html on line 4:
ellauri197.html on line 151: - This poem appears in a section entitled "A Woman Old and New". Yeats is obviously writing from the perspective of a female, not in his own voice. Thus the poem does not reveal homosexuality, but is rather an imaginative recreation of that woman's musings.
ellauri197.html on line 311: Additionally, the third line of this stanza again does not have a subject for its main verb, and this format adds a bit of structure amidst the chaos since the varying verb tenses happen in the first two lines of both stanzas while the missing subject shows up in the third lines. This sustained format is an indication that this bad memory she could not “forget” keeps her in a loop she cannot break free of, as in no matter how far she tries to run from it, she always ends up dealing with the same problems again and again. The grammar details, then, mirror the circular repetition of her emotional problems.
ellauri197.html on line 325: What the fuck? The idiot who wrote the analysis could not parse the poem! All that takes place in the first 2 lines of poem is that a Chomsky topicalization transformation moves the clausal objects of the main verbs to the front. There is nothing the matter with the tenses in the poem, it is all quite run of the mill.
ellauri197.html on line 401: Through this extract of ‘Love’s Organ´s Growth’, the poet, John Donne, says that if love takes such additions (gentle love deeds), as more circles are produced by one stirred in water, those, like so many spheres, make only one heaven, for they are all centered in her. When the poet says: Spheres, he refers to the Ptolemaic astronomy, the spheres were a series of concentric hollow globes which revolved around the earth and carried the heavenly bodies with them. There were supposed to be nine such hollow globes and together they made up what we call the ‘heaven’.
ellauri197.html on line 403: Here the term ‘concentrique’ means one circle within the other, or circles or globes with a common center. Here this common center is earth. Hence the spheres were supposed to be concentric or centered upon the earth. The first four lines of this extract can also be analyzed like: just as when water is stirred additional circles are produced by the original one, then these new additions will only constitute one heaven, like the spheres in the Ptolemaic astronomy form only one heaven; and that is because all these additions will be centered on you, just as in that system the spheres are all centered on the earth.
ellauri197.html on line 557: McDonald’s lämnade Ryssland – Andrej förlorade jobbet. Efter att Ryssland anföll Ukraina har en stor del av de globala storföretagen lämnat landet. Hur djup den ekonomiska recessionen blir är ännu för tidigt att säga. Experterna tror att situationen kan bli lika svår som på 1990-talet när Vilperin Perikunta välkomnade Andrej hos oss sist.
ellauri197.html on line 561: Apple, Nokia, Nike, Ikea, internetaffären Asos, Ford Motor Company, BMW, Rolls-Royce, Exxon, Mobil, Shell, BP, Warner Bros, Paramount, Sony, Walt Disney Company och Netflix.
ellauri197.html on line 571: – De anställde mig direkt när jag kontaktade dem. Kvällstid studerar jag informationssystem, dagtid jobbade jag på restaurangen. Ibland jobbade jag åtta timmar om dagen, ibland upp till fjorton. Det kan man bestämma själv.
ellauri197.html on line 579: ”Problemet är inte att regeringen gör fel, utan att västen för ekonomiskt krig mot Ryssland. I nuvarande situation finns inga bra lösningar. Vad den ryska regeringen kan göra är mycket begränsat.
ellauri197.html on line 583: – Vi kommer att få samma problem som under coronapandemin, då utrikeshandeln rasade och logistikkedjor bröts. Men just nu lever vi i en enorm osäkerhet. Ekonomin kommer troligen att gå bakåt med mellan 6 och 10 procentenheter i år, men allt beror på den geopolitiska situationen, säger Donets till ryska BBC. O vad jag längtar tillbaka till planekonomins tider, säger Ms. Donetsk.
ellauri197.html on line 589: Andrej håller för sin del redan på att leta efter ett nytt jobb vid sidan om studierna. Som it-student kommer han troligen inte ha några problem med att hitta ett. Hans dröm i framtiden är att vara med och utveckla den digitala produkten NFT (Non-fungible token). Men medan studierna pågår hade han gärna haft kvar sitt deltidsjobb på McDonald's.
ellauri197.html on line 591: – Jag trodde inte att det som sker nu skulle påverka oss. Men sedan stängde Zara, Ikea... jag förstod att det här var allvarligt. Tänk dig, liv utan Zara, utan Ikea! Nu söker jag ett annat jobb och tror det blir bra. Men det är synd. Jag gillade McDonald's, att jag kunde jobba när det passade mig.
ellauri197.html on line 593: Sedan kriget började har tusentals människor lämnat Ryssland, framför allt it-experter och programmerare, som har lätt att hitta jobb utomlands. Också Andrej funderar på det.
ellauri197.html on line 597: – Utomlands är det bättre löner och dessutom ofta billigare att leva än i Moskva. Jag har funderat på Tjeckien eller USA. Det är friare i väst. Den enskilda människan har mer rättigheter. Men just nu känns det inte särskilt realistiskt att få jobb utomlands, jag har aldrig bott utomlands och jag måste tänka klart. I huvudet är allt fortfarande en enda röra.
ellauri197.html on line 647: His father was a well-paid clerk for the Bank of England, earning about £150 per year. Browning's paternal grandfather was a slave owner in Saint Kitts, West Indies, but Browning's father was an abolitionist. Browning's father had been sent to the West Indies to work on a sugar plantation, but due to a slave revolt there, had returned. Browning's mother was the daughter of a German shipowner who had settled in Dundee, Scotland, and his Scottish wife. His paternal grandmother, Margaret Tittle, had inherited a plantation in St Kitts and was rumoured in the family to have a mixed-race ancestry including some Jamaican blood, but author Julia Markus suggests she was Kittitian rather than Jamaican. The evidence is inconclusive. Robert's father, a literary collector, amassed a library of some 6,000 books, many of them rare so that Robert grew up in a household with significant literary resources. His mother, to whom he was close (no tietysti), was a devout nonconformist and a talented musician. His younger sister, Sarianna, also gifted, became her brother's "companion" in his later years, after the death of his wife in 1861. His father encouraged his children's interest in literature and the arts.
ellauri197.html on line 651: In March 1833, "Pauline, a Fragment of a Confession" was published anonymously by Saunders and Otley at the expense of the author, Robert Browning, who received the money from his aunt, Mrs Silverthorne. It is a long poem composed in homage to the poet Shelley and somewhat in his style. Originally Browning considered Pauline as the first of a series written by different aspects of himself, but he soon abandoned this idea. The press noticed the publication. However, it sold no copies. Mill oli oikeassa, narsistista jaaritusta.
ellauri198.html on line 4:
ellauri198.html on line 58: Näin siis nobelisti Bellow. Vapaus, löytämisen ja näkymisen ilo, toivo kaiken toivottomaksi tekevän uhalla ja keskellä, elämän äkkikäänteisyys, moninaisuus, varakkuus, rikkaus! Saul Bellowin Augie Marchin sikailut ei ole vain hauska veijariromaani. Se on myös paxu ja nenäviisas kirja velmusta juutalaisesta ajassamme.
ellauri198.html on line 75: 4. Kun Herra näki hänen tulevan katsomaan, hän huusi pensaasta: "Mooses, Mooses!" Mooses vastasi: "Tässä olen." 5. Herra sanoi: "Minä täällä, Herra, täällä pensaassa. Älä tule lähemmäksi! Riisu kengät jalastasi, sillä paikka, jossa seisot, on pyhä, ja sandaalisi ovat papanaiset." 6. Herra sanoi vielä: "Minä olen sinun isäsi Jumala, Abrahamin, Iisakin ja Jaakobin Jumala, ja monen muunkin, ketä ei maxa vaivaa mainita tässä hötäkässä." Silloin Mooses peitti kasvonsa hupparilla, sillä hän pelkäsi katsoa rätisevää Jumalaa. Mixei Joosefia mainittu?
ellauri198.html on line 120: Ohjaaja Pizzalatte esittelee Nigerian skotin Amelian opettajahahmon kesken koulutunnin, jossa käsitellään Robert Penn Warrenin runoa nimeltään Tell Me a Story, joka aukeaa ”The name of the story will be Time / But You must not pronounce its name” -säkeen kautta. Ei vittu aukea, se tulee vasta B-puolella. Ei sillä kait ole juuri mitään tekemistä juanen kanssa. Haetaan vaan tollasia laatusarjan kannuxia. Vai oisko sittenkin jotain yhteistä:
ellauri198.html on line 123: Robert Penn Warren (1905-1989) oli yhdysvaltalainen prosaisti, runoilija ja kriitikko. Hän on kirjoittanut muun muassa suomennetun romaanin Kaikki kuninkaan miehet. Kriitikkona hän edusti uuskritiikkiä. Warren and Brooks helped to establish the New Criticism as “an orthodoxy so powerful that contemporary American fiction and poetry are most easily defined by their rebellion against it.” Hän kirjoitti selkä kaarella eri kirjallisuudenlajien teoksia.
ellauri198.html on line 131: Writing in the New Republic Steel, George Mayberry wrote that the novel was "in the tradition of many classics", comparing the novel favorably with Moby-Dick, The Sun Also Rises, and The Great Gatsby.
ellauri198.html on line 136: Warren’s poetry is written “in a genuinely expansive, passionate style. Look at its prose ease and rapidity oddly qualified by log-piling compounds, alliteration, successive stresses, and an occasional inversion something rough and serviceable as a horse-blanket yet fancy to—and you wonder how he ever came up with it. It is excitingly massive and moulded and full of momentum. Echoes of Yeats and Auden still persist, but it is wonderfully peculiar, homemade.” His language is robust and rhetorical. He likes his adjectives and nouns to go in pairs, reinforcing one another.
ellauri198.html on line 141: Harold Bloom observed in the New Leader, “Warren alone among living writers ranks with the foremost American poets of the century: Frost, Stevens, Hart Crane, Williams, Pound, Eliot. ...
ellauri198.html on line 146: Part of the problem seems to be an inordinate ambition for grandeur; part is what feels to me like haste. If Warren were in less of a hurry to chronicle each dawn dream, birdsong, and memory as it occurred, a process of distillation just might be allowed to take place. He is not an original thinker or a visionary poet. His is
ellauri198.html on line 147: a sometimes loose, rambling line, a nostalgia verging on obsession, a veering towards philosophical attitudinizing, the mask of the redneck that out-rednecks the redneck.
ellauri198.html on line 154: by Robert Penn Warren
ellauri198.html on line 222: The great globe reels in the solar fire,
ellauri198.html on line 260: Esim Roland was the name of a real-life medieval military leader under Charlemagne who, more importantly, was the subject of the oldest surviving major work of French literature: an epic poem titled The Song of Roland. Roland was a loyal and trusting knight who was told to bring up the rear guard and burst his own temples open while sounding a horn too vigorously. What a way to go! In 1855, Robert Browning made the warrior the subject of his poem “Childe Roland to the Dark Tower Came,” which leads us back to Stephen King, of all the U.S. turds. It’s a bit incongruous to think of Dorff’s Roland West—an uncouth man who refers to “Saigon trim” and is eager to start a fight.
ellauri198.html on line 269: Carmen Ejogo’s Amelia Reardon is an English teacher (and, later, a renowned author) which gives True Detective an excuse to drop some lovely poetic voice-over to the first episode, when she reads out two Robert Penn Warren poems. The first is titled “Tell Me a Story” (already read).
ellauri198.html on line 296: The Satanic panic is a moral panic consisting of over 12,000 unsubstantiated cases of Satanic ritual abuse (SRA, sometimes known as ritual abuse, ritualistic abuse, organized abuse, or sadistic ritual abuse) starting in the United States in the 1980s, spreading throughout many parts of the world by the late 1990s, and persisting today. The panic originated in 1980 with the publication of Michelle Remembers, a book co-written by Canadian psychiatrist Lawrence Pazder and his patient (and future wife), Michelle Smith, which used the discredited practice of recovered-memory therapy to make sweeping lurid claims about satanic ritual abuse involving Smith. The allegations which afterwards arose throughout much of the United States involved reports of physical and sexual abuse of people in the context of occult or Satanic rituals. In its most extreme form, allegations involve a conspiracy of a global Satanic cult that includes the wealthy and powerful world elite in which children are abducted or bred for human sacrifices, pornography, and prostitution, an allegation that returned to prominence in the form of Qanon.
ellauri198.html on line 344: A footnote in the Penguin Classics edition (Robert Browning Selected Poems) advises against allegorical interpretation, saying “readers who wish to try their hand should be warned that the enterprise strongly resembles carving a statue out of fog." This sentiment is echoed by many critics, who believe any quest for interpretation will ultimately fail, due to the dreamlike, illusionary nature of the poem.
ellauri198.html on line 357: by Robert Browning
ellauri198.html on line 387: With that obstreperous joy success would bring, Olisin kuin kissa lipevällä jäällä
ellauri198.html on line 433: Such starved ignoble nature; nothing throve: En nähnyt koskaan, ihan elotonta,
ellauri198.html on line 643: "Childe Roland pimeään tunneliin tuli" on englantilaisen kirjailijan Robert Browningin runo, joka on kirjoitettu 2. tammikuuta 1852 ja julkaistu ensimmäisen kerran vuonna 1855 kokoelmassa nimeltä Miehet ja naiset. Juoni:
ellauri198.html on line 648: It is an obsolete form of the word slogan, closer to its derivation from the Scottish Gaelic sluagh-ghairm (meaning war-cry).
ellauri198.html on line 650: In turn this influenced the pseudo-Medieval poetry of Thomas Chatterton. For example, in a poem about the Battle of Hastings he writes "some caught a slughorne and an onsett wounde" (Battle of Hastings ii.99), meaning "some picked up a slughorn and sounded a charge". A slughorn in this context appears to be some kind of trumpet. However, in a footnote to another usage of the word, Chatterton defines it as "not unlike a hautboy". The Medieval English word hautboy is the origin of the modern word oboe and has never referred to any instrument comparable to a trumpet. It is more like a faggot. Oh boy, haut-bois, puu pystyssä. Vitun pultti-bois.
ellauri198.html on line 652: Chatterton's usage inspired Robert Browning in his poem Childe Roland to the Dark Tower Came, in particular the last stanza in which the hero sees the ghosts of all those who died trying to reach the Dark Tower before him.
ellauri198.html on line 687: Lisää Robert Browning-juoruja
ellauri198.html on line 689: Robert Browning (7 May 1812 - 12 December 1889) ranks No. 8,206 among the Most Man-Crushed-Upon Celebrity Men, and ranks 12,642nd among all celebrities on the Top Celebrity Crushes list. Robert Browning is straight. Scroll down and check out his short and medium hairstyles.
ellauri198.html on line 691: In March 1833, "Pauline, a Fragment of a Confession" was published anonymously by Saunders and Otley at the expense of the author, Robert Browning, who received the money from his aunt, Mrs Silverthorne. It is a long poem composed in homage to the poet Shelley and somewhat in his style. Originally Browning considered Pauline as the first of a series written by different aspects of himself, but he soon abandoned this idea. John Stuart Mill, however, wrote that the author suffered from an "intense and morbid self-consciousness". Later Browning was rather embarrassed by the work.
ellauri198.html on line 693: In 1838, he visited Italy looking for background for Sordello, a long poem in heroic couplets, presented as the imaginary biography of the Mantuan bard spoken of by Dante in the Divine Comedy, canto 6 of Purgatory, set against a background of hate and conflict during the Guelph-Ghibelline wars. This was published in 1840 and met with widespread derision, gaining him the reputation of wanton carelessness and obscurity. Tennyson commented that he only understood the first and last lines and Carlyle wrote that his wife had read the poem through and could not tell whether Sordello was a man, a city or a book. Ai tän mä taisinkin jo kertoa albumissa 54.
ellauri198.html on line 697: From the time of their marriage and until Elizabeth's death, the Brownings lived in Italy, residing first in Pisa, and then, within a year, finding an apartment in Florence at Casa Guidi (now a museum to their memory). Their only child, Robert Wiedemann Barrett Browning, nicknamed "Penine" or "Pen", was born in 1849. In these years Browning was fascinated by, and learned from, the art and atmosphere of Italy. He would, in later life, describe Italy as his university. As Elizabeth had inherited money of her own, the couple were reasonably comfortable in Italy, and their relationship together was happy. However, the literary assault on Browning's work did not let up and he was critically dismissed further, by patrician writers such as Charles Kingsley, for the desertion of England for foreign lands.
ellauri198.html on line 705: obert_Browning_after_death.jpg/220px-Robert_Browning_after_death.jpg" />
ellauri198.html on line 706: Robert Browning shortly after death
ellauri198.html on line 710: The series was chiefly inspired by the poem "Childe Roland to the Dark Tower Came" by Robert Browning, whose full text was included in the final volume's appendix. In the preface to the revised 2003 edition of The Gunslinger, King also identifies The Lord of the Rings, Arthurian legend, and The Good, the Bad and the Ugly as inspirations. He identifies Clint Eastwood's "Man with No Name" character as one of the major inspirations for the protagonist, Roland Deschain. King's style of location names in the series, such as Mid-World, and his development of a unique language abstract to our own [clarification needed] (High Speech), are also influenced by J. R. R. Tolkien's work. The series is referred to on King's website as his magnum opus.
ellauri198.html on line 712: Bill Sheehan of The Washington Post called the series "a humane, visionary epic and a true magnum opus" that stands as an "imposing example of pure storytelling," "filled with brilliantly rendered set pieces... cataclysmic encounters and moments of desolating tragedy." Erica Noonan of the Boston Globe said, "There's a fascinating world to be discovered in the series" but noted that its epic nature keeps it from being user-friendly.
ellauri198.html on line 751: Mitä tuubaa! Aivan hanurista! "The paradox of perspectivism is that it depends wholly on the subject/object dualism." Etupiässä takapiässä, takapiässä etupiässä, liikkuuko siitin emättimessä vaiko emätin siittimen ympärillä, ei tiedä ilman viitekehystä, sanoo E. Saarisen suhteellisuusteoria. Milttoni saatana, siinä vasta perspektivisti! Misprision tarkoittaa sanan väärinkäyttöä.
ellauri198.html on line 766: (Siis mitä? Kazo alempaa, äijä oli täysi seko joka ei sietänyt izenäisen Eiren kelttimäistä touhua.) Harold siteeraa jotain toista synkkää tornia Shelleyllä, ja pyörittelee tätä torniaihetta aika pitkästyttävästi muutenkin. Robert Zimmermannillakin oli joku vahtitorni jo v 1967, mutta siitä Harold tuskin piittasi, kuinka se olis arvannut että sillä tulis pitkän päälle toinen noobeli? Browning haukkuu Shelleytä subjektiivisexi ja izeään se kehuu objektiivisexi. Paskapuhetta. Pointixi jää oliko Rolandin tornissa ikkunoita. Ei ollut.
ellauri198.html on line 772: Toi Condition of Fire and Election-Love taitaa olla jotain kabbalismia (kz alla). Love, love, love. Kabbalah says that the only force in reality is the force of love. Evidently, without love, there is no life. Make love not war. (No siinähän se tuli!) This is why Kabbalah says that Creator, nature, and love are synonymous. Tucker Carlson Wears a Kabbalah Bracelet. It has been absolutely infuriating to watch supposedly "awake" people promote Tucker Carlson as some kind of mainstream hero. He is obviously a servant of the Jews and this is just one more piece of evidence.
ellauri198.html on line 786: From Hegel we can move to Mallarmé's Igitur, and an illuminating observation by Paul de Man, even as from Kierkegaard we can go back to Childe Roland and the critical mode I endeavor to develop. Meditating on Igitur, de Man remarks that in Baudelaire and in Mallarmé (under Baudelaire's influence) "ennui" is no longer a personal feeling but comes from the burden of the past. A consciousness comes to know itself as negative and finite. It sees that others know themselves also in this way, and so it transcends the negative and finite present by seeing the universal nature of what it itself is becoming. So, de Man says of Mallarmé's view, comparing it to Hegel's, that "we develop by dominating our natural anxiety and alienation and by transforming it in the awareness and the knowledge of otherness." Jotain tosi narsistista läppää tääkin näyttää olevan.
ellauri198.html on line 846: While Yeats was playing with esoterica, Ireland was rife with internal strife and a world war flitted past. He was now the “sixty-year-old smiling public man” of his poem “Among School Children,” which he wrote after touring an Irish elementary school. He was also a world-renowned artist of impressive stature, having received the Nobel Prize for Literature in 1923. At night the poet could “sweat with terror” because of the surrounding violence, but otherwise he was enjoying himself royally. His collection The Dark Tower (1928) is often considered his best single book.
ellauri198.html on line 917: Pauline: A Fragment of a Confession (also known as Pauline) is the first published poem by Robert Browning. It was written in 1832, and published anonymously in 1833. The poem is the confession of an unnamed poet to his lover, the eponymous woman. It was first reprinted in 1868 with no alterations to the text.
ellauri198.html on line 918: Arthur Symons (n.h.) described the poem as a "sort of spiritual biography" in the way that it describes the feelings and emotions of the poet, rather than the actions. Isobel Armstrong (n.h.) argued that the poem was Browning's attempt to "institutionalize" himself as a Romantic poet. Browning described himself within the poem as "priest and prophet" and therefore gave himself both the meaning and purpose that he was seeking as a young man. Vitun pappi ja profeetta, ansaizisi potkun perseeseen. Tää narsistinen suollos ei kelpaa mihinkään. Ei maxa vaivaa edes siteerata.
ellauri203.html on line 4:
ellauri203.html on line 58: Se on eräänlainen kaasukammio siinä mielessä, että se varmasti muuttaa todellisuuttasi, kokea tällainen kontrasti yhdessä suhteessa tai henkilössä niin lyhyessä ajassa ilman mitään syytä tai tapahtumaa joka osoittaisi miksi. Tässä mielessä "mykistys" voi tapahtua suullisessa viestinnässä, tai se voidaan ilmaista kehonkielen kautta, kuten yhtäkkiä kääntymällä pois sinusta puhuessasi, kävelemällä poispäin sinusta ilman syytä jne. Sammuttamista, "hiljaisuutta", pimenemistä, normaalien ihmisten kannalta, voidaan kutsua myös "syötiksi ja kytkimeksi", jossa sinut provosoidaan keskusteluun tai kokemuksiin, ja yhtäkkiä se mikä oli kahden hengen tango, on nyt sooloesitys. Näytät ja tunnet itsesi idioottimaiseksi ollessasi niin korkealla energiatasolla yksin. Keskustelussa se voi näkyä tavoilla, kuten kiviseinä (ei vastausta, tyhjät tuijotukset) tai nälistys (asiaankuuluvien tietojen pidättäminen, robottivaste, kiintymyksen tai kiinnostuxen puute).
ellauri203.html on line 117: Dostoevsky began to understand clearly that Russian society’s greatest problem was not socialism as such but its departure from God. Thus the problem lay not in the social but in the spiritual realm. Socialism was a result of the people’s spiritual condition.
ellauri203.html on line 119: Another problem, which could make matters worse, was the intrusion of the socialist (atheist) teaching mentioned above. From his own experience, Dostoevsky knew the danger and destructiveness of this socialist way, offered by many as the way to reform society. In his letter to M. Pogodin, Dostoevsky writes that ‘socialism and Christianity are antonyms’. Christianity and private enterprise are synonyms. The danger of this way, in Dostoevsky’s opinion, was its negation of God and establishment of a new atheistic society.
ellauri203.html on line 135: Fyodor Michailovich had such type of personality that everyone enjoyed. He was robbed unmercifully, though due to his kindness and trust, but he wouldn’t want to get into details or rebuke servants that used his carelessness. Fyodor Mikhailovich was a man of limitless kindness. Dostoevsky was especially interested in children and paid attention to cases of child abuse that he heard about. He followed closely the trials of parents accused of child abuse.
ellauri203.html on line 152: It’s not surprising that the two authors did not like each other. From his youth Turgenev, a wealthy nobleman, made fun of his lugubrious colleague. In a mocking poem he described Dostoyevsky as a "pimple on the nose of literature." Dostoyevsky didn´t conceal his reciprocal hostility and was indignant that, with all his wealth, Turgenev´s royalties for his publications were four times as high as he was paid.
ellauri203.html on line 204: Le mariage de Maximilien et de Marie est célébré dans la chapelle du palais d’Hiver, à Saint-Pétersbourg, le 2 juillet 1839. Il donne lieu à 15 jours de festivités mais soulève la désapprobation des Moscovites, qui sont choqués de voir l’une de leurs princesses s’unir à un prince français, dont le père a participé à la prise de leur ville en 1812. Immédiatement après les épousailles, le duc de Leuchtenberg reçoit du tsar Nicolas Ier le prédicat d'altesse impériale et le titre de prince Romanovsky. Il est nommé major général de l'armée russe et colonel en chef du régiment de hussards de Kiev. Il reçoit par ailleurs une rente annuelle de 100 000 roubles. De son côté, le tsar confère à Marie une rente de 700 000 roubles ainsi qu'une somme de 2 millions payable en bons du trésor à 4%. Afin de loger le couple, l'empereur s'engage finalement à construire et à meubler à ses frais un palais meublé à Saint-Pétersbourg et un autre situé dans les environs de la capitale.
ellauri203.html on line 258: René Girard pitää kaiken inhimillisen kulttuurin perustana jäljittelyä eli mimesistä. Mimeettinen halu taas merkitsee sitä, että jäljittely kohdistuu toisen haluihin. Girardin mukaan jäljittelemme yksilöitä, joiden kaltaisia haluaisimme olla, ja näin jäljitellessämme heitä päädymme haluamaan samoja asioita kuin he. Girardin mukaan riitelevät lapset ja nykykulttuurin snobit ovat mimeettisessä haluamisessaan toistensa kaltaisia: se, mitä izellä on, on arvokasta ja taistelemisen arvoista siksi, että toinen haluaa sitä. Sehän toimi Eetullakin: jos se ei tahtonut syödä pullaansa, piti mennä härkkimään ja sanoa "minuun pulla", niin eiköhän se ärähtänyt ja käynyt pullaan käsixi.
ellauri203.html on line 282: Vielä 1 aivan tuiki tuntematon nobelisti!
ellauri203.html on line 284: Ranea vielä katalampi pääoman kätyri lienee yhtä täysin tuntematon polakki nimeltä Czeslaw Milosz ja sen kirja The Captive Mind. Ei helvetti, sehän onkin vuoden 1980 kirjallisuuden nobelisti? Takuulla ratas lännen väsymättömässä taistelussa Puolan johdon vaihtamisexi johkin länsityyppisempään. No mistä se on muka hyvä? Se on mainittu albumissa 75 heppuna, joka sai vaikutteita Sestofiltiltä, joka puolestaan otti vahinkoa kyttyrä-Kierkegaardilta ja Dostojevskilta. Jotain existentiaalilipilaaria on siis odotettavissa.
ellauri203.html on line 298: Czesław Miłosz sai Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon vuonna 1980. Kommunistinen Puola sensuroi hänen teoksiaan, mutta niitä julkaistiin maanalaisina painoksina. Rautaesiripun kaaduttua vuonna 1989 Miłosz saattoi palata Puolaan. Hän asettui asumaan osaksi Krakovaan mutta säilytti myös Kalifornian-kotinsa siltä varalta ettei viihtyisikään Puolassa. Miłosz heitti Israelin holokaustimuistopaikalle kunnialaatan. Hän kuoli 2004 kotonaan Krakovassa 93-vuotiaana. Hänet on haudattu Krakovan Kazimierzissa sijaitsevan Kalliokirkon (Kościół na Skałce) Varattomien veljien kryptaan.
ellauri203.html on line 302: In the novel, a new Mongol Empire conquers Poland and introduces Murti-Bing pills as a cure for independent thought. At first, the pills create contentment and blind obedience, but ultimately lead those taking them to develop dual personalities. Kaxoisolentoja taas! Miłosz compares the pills to the intellectually deadening effects of Marxism-Leninism in the USSR and the Soviet Bloc.
ellauri203.html on line 339: Only a white-haired old man, who would be a prophet Vain mä valkotukkainen nobelisti, wannabe profeetta,
ellauri203.html on line 348: Vangittu mieli ( puolaksi: Zniewolony umysł ) on puolalaisen kirjailijan, runoilijan, akateemisen ja Nobel-palkitun Czesław Miłoszin vuonna 1953 julkaisema tietokirjallinen propagandateos. Se julkaistiin ensimmäisen kerran englanniksi Jane Zielonkon käännöksenä vuonna 1953.
ellauri203.html on line 350: The Captive Mind kirjoitettiin pian sen jälkeen, kun kirjailija loikkasi stalinistisesta Puolasta vuonna 1951. Siinä Miłosz hyödynsi kokemuksiaan laittomana kirjailijana natsimiehityksen aikana ja kuulumisesta sodanjälkeisen Puolan kansantasavallan hallitsevaan luokkaan. Kirja yrittää selittää stalinismin houkuttelevuutta älymystölle, sen kannattajien ajatteluprosesseja sekä erimielisyyksien ja yhteistyön olemassaoloa sodanjälkeisen neuvostoblokin sisällä. Miłosz kuvaili kirjoittaneensa kirjan "suuren sisäisen konfliktin alla", mutta "toivo lihavasta palkkiosta rohkaisi."
ellauri203.html on line 352: Kirja alkaa keskustelulla Stanisław Ignacy Witkiewiczin dystopisesta romaanista Kyltymättömyys. Romaanissa uusi Mongoli-imperiumi valloittaa Puolan ja esittelee Murti-Bing-pillereitä itsenäisen ajattelun parannuskeinona. Aluksi pillerit luovat tyytyväisyyttä ja sokeaa tottelevaisuutta, mutta lopulta johtavat niitä ottavien kehittämään kaksoispersoonallisuuksia. Miłosz vertaa nokelasti pillereitä marxilais-leninismin älyllisesti tuhoaviin vaikutuksiin Neuvostoliitossa ja neuvostoblokissa.
ellauri203.html on line 355: Luku III: Ketmam perustuu nykyiseen Iraniin 1800-luvun ranskalaisen diplomaatin Arthur de Gobineaun kirjoituksiin. Kirjassaan Keski-Aasian uskonnot ja filosofiat Gobineau kuvailee Ketmanin käytäntöä, tekoa, jossa palvotaan islamia ja samalla salataan salainen islamin vastustus. Gobineau kuvailee käytäntöä laajalle levinneeksi islamilaisessa maailmassa, ja hän lainaa yhtä informanttiaan sanoneen: "Persiassa ei ole ainuttakaan oikeaa muslimia." Gobineau kuvaa edelleen Ketmanin käyttöä heterodoksisten näkemysten salaa levittämiseen ihmisille, jotka uskovat, että heille opetetaan islamilaista ortodoksiaa.
ellauri203.html on line 403: Elämänsä myöhempinä vuosina hän kirjoitti useita suurempia runomuotoja. Kaiken kaikkiaan näyttää etevämmältä ja pidetymmältä kuin nobelistiloikkari.
ellauri203.html on line 485: Dr Ronald Francis Hingley (26 April 1920, Edinburgh – 23 January 2010) oli anglosaxi kääntäjä ym tuhertaja, russofobi samaa kaliiperia kuin hoblan Laureeni.
ellauri203.html on line 518: Sevverran Kukolnikista, ja Nikkalasta. Joo siis tää Stavroginin poka on sit jonkinlainen päähenkilö. Se on komea kuin Fedja-setä, vahva, peloton ja älykäs kuin Fedja-setä, mut silti jotenkin luotaantyöntävä just kuten Dosto ize. Sosiaalisesti se on izevarma ja kohtelias (hmm nojaa), mutta vaikuttaa äkäseltä, hajamieliseltä ja vähän sekobolzilta (check). Kaikki muut on lääpällään Dos- Stavroginiin ja otettuja siitä. Verhojanskyn mielestä se olis hyvä Uljanov, Shitov suunnittelee siitä uutta Jeesusta. Paizi eze osoittautuu mätämunaxi, sadistisexi psykopaatixi. Tähän kohtaan kuuluis se sensuroitu luku "Tihonin pakeilla", jossa ilmenee eze oli raiskannut kuoliaaxi jonkun 11 vee sakkoliha piikasen. Ja hoisi vaimonsa murhan siinä sivussa. Se on yhtä paha kuin hinkuvan Wallenbergin pojan päävastustaja Axel Munck, joka ei tunne midiä eikä osaa erottaa hyvää pahasta. Sellaisia ne psykopaatit tuppaa olemaan. Siltä tulee aina kun se tekee jotain oikein kiellettyä. Taisi olla Dostolle ize koettua.
ellauri203.html on line 648: Martin, a respected doctor (huoh), his wife Karin, Karin's seventeen year old brother Minus, and widowed father David of Karin and Minus' have convened at the family's summer home on an island off the coast of Sweden to celebrate David's return from the Swiss Alps, where he was substantially completing his latest novel (huoh). The family has long lived a fantasy of they being a loving one, David's extended absences which are the cause of many of the family's problems. Without that parental guidance, Minus is at a confused and vulnerable stage of his life where he is a bundle of repressed emotions, most specifically concerning not feeling loved by his father and concerning the opposite sex (huoh). He is attracted to females as a collective but does not know how to handle blatant female sexuality, especially if it is directed his way. A month earlier Karin was released from a mental institution (huoh). Her doctor has told Martin that the likelihood that she will fully recover from her illness is low, her ultimate fate being that her mental state will disintegrate totally, although she has functioned well since her release. In his love for her, Martin has vowed to himself to see her through whatever she faces. As Karin begins to lose grip on reality, Minus is the one most directly affected, although it does bring out the issues all the men are facing with regard to their interrelationships.
ellauri203.html on line 677: Phineas falls in love with the girl of his dreams, only to learn she is a robot sex doll.
ellauri204.html on line 4:
ellauri204.html on line 58: Der Frosch, als er die Zusage erhalten hatte, tauchte seinen Kopf unter, sank hinab, und über ein Weilchen kam er wieder heraufgerudert, hatte die Kugel im Maul und warf sie ins Gras. Die Königstochter war voll Freude, als sie ihr schönes Spielwerk wieder erblickte, hob es auf und sprang damit fort. "Warte, warte," rief der Frosch, "nimm mich mit, ich kann nicht so laufen wie du!" Aber was half es ihm, daß er ihr sein Quak, Quak so laut nachschrie, als er konnte! Sie hörte nicht darauf, eilte nach Hause und hatte bald den armen Frosch vergessen, der wieder in seinen Brunnen hinabsteigen mußte.
ellauri204.html on line 60: Am andern Tage, als sie mit dem König und allen Hofleuten sich zur Tafel gesetzt hatte und von ihrem goldenen Tellerlein aß, da kam, plitsch platsch, plitsch platsch, etwas die Marmortreppe heraufgekrochen, und als es oben angelangt war, klopfte es an die Tür und rief: "Königstochter, jüngste, mach mir auf!" Sie lief und wollte sehen, wer draußen wäre, als sie aber aufmachte, so saß der Frosch davor. Da warf sie die Tür hastig zu, setzte sich wieder an den Tisch, und es war ihr ganz angst. Der König sah wohl, daß ihr das Herz gewaltig klopfte, und sprach: "Mein Kind, was fürchtest du dich, steht etwa ein Riese vor der Tür und will dich holen?" - "Ach nein," antwortete sie, "es ist kein Riese, sondern ein garstiger Frosch." - "Was will der Frosch von dir?" - "Ach, lieber Vater, als ich gestern im Wald bei dem Brunnen saß und spielte, da fiel meine goldene Kugel ins Wasser. Und weil ich so weinte, hat sie der Frosch wieder heraufgeholt, und weil er es durchaus verlangte, so versprach ich ihm, er sollte mein Geselle werden; ich dachte aber nimmermehr, daß er aus seinem Wasser herauskönnte. Nun ist er draußen und will zu mir herein." Und schon klopfte es zum zweitenmal und rief:
ellauri204.html on line 72: Als er aber herabfiel, war er kein Frosch, sondern ein Königssohn mit schönen und freundlichen Augen. Der war nun nach ihres Vaters Willen ihr lieber Geselle und Gemahl. Da erzählte er ihr, er wäre von einer bösen Hexe verwünscht worden, und niemand hätte ihn aus dem Brunnen erlösen können als sie allein, und morgen wollten sie zusammen in sein Reich gehen. Dann schliefen sie ein, und am andern Morgen, als die Sonne sie aufweckte, kam ein Wagen herangefahren, mit acht weißen Pferden bespannt, die hatten weiße Straußfedern auf dem Kopf und gingen in goldenen Ketten, und hinten stand der Diener des jungen Königs, das war der treue Heinrich. Der treue Heinrich hatte sich so betrübt, als sein Herr war in einen Frosch verwandelt worden, daß er drei eiserne Bande hatte um sein Herz legen lassen, damit es ihm nicht vor Weh und Traurigkeit zerspränge. Der Wagen aber sollte den jungen König in sein Reich abholen; der treue Heinrich hob beide hinein, stellte sich wieder hinten auf und war voller Freude über die Erlösung.
ellauri204.html on line 376: Eeron amerikkalainen vaihtoisä Martin oli löytänyt mytopoeettisesta miesliikkeestä eheyttävän henkisen kodin ja vastapainon kuolettavalle ikävystymiselle. Mytopoeetikot opettivat kilpailukapitalismin, tieteellisen järjen, toimistobyrokratian ja modernin perhemallin rikkoneen miestenvälisen alkukantaisen veljeyden. Länsimaissa terve sankarienpalvonta oli korvautunut sankarien pilkkaamisen dekadentilla nautinnolla, koko sankaruus oli kyseenalaistettu, tilalle hyväksytty banaalius ja keskinkertaisuus. Miehiset hyveet oli virvoitettava henkiin myyttisellä tarinankerronnalla, rituaaleilla ja symbolisella sodankäynnillä. Miesten ei pitänyt pelätä toisiaan eikä primitiivistä takapuoltaan, vaan uskaltautua syvämiehuuteen yhteisyyden, luottamuksen ja luovan leikin avulla. Siitä kumpusi Zeus-voimaa. Hän otti Eeron mukaan muutamille melko huvittavillekin viikonloppuleireille - eräällä leirillä miehet konttasivat yössä tuhansia vuosia vanhoista juurakoista kasvavien amerikanhaapojen alla ja ulvoivat ja murisivat toteemieläintensä äänin -, ja vaikkei Eero ottanut tosissaan puoliakaan Martinin puheista, hän oli varma, että hänkin voisi kaupallisesti hyödyntää toteemipaaluaan ja pimeätä puoltaan.
ellauri204.html on line 416: Für Christa Siegert ist Eisenhans der Wille, der im Käfig der Gebote kultiviert wird, aber unfrei bleibt. Frei kann er der begreifenden Seele das Vollkommene reichen, die sich aber daran verletzt und das geistige Lebenswasser egoistisch einsetzt. Wilhelm Salber sieht eine Dialektik zwischen verschlingendem Einheitspfuhl und lebender Entwicklung. Nach dem Schema vom verlorenen Sohn suche man „Revolte und Dennoch-geliebt-Werden, Gefahr und treue Rettung im letzten Augenblick zu verbinden.“ Edith Helene Dörre vergleicht Der Eisenhans mit der Heilkraft des Aquamarin (wieso?). Psychotherapeut Jobst Finke denkt auch an Sagengestalten wie Rübezahl und sieht die Entwicklung des weltfremd erzogenen Knaben zum starken Ritter durch väterlichen Beistand und Identifikation. Der Text half einem vaterlos aufgewachsenen, wenig durchsetzungsfähigen Angestellten, seine Konflikterfahrungen zu verbalisieren.
ellauri204.html on line 431: Eines Tages beobachtet die Königstochter von ihrem Fenster aus den Gärtnerburschen und fordert ihn auf, ihr einen Strauß Blumen zu bringen. Mit den Blumen ist
ellauri204.html on line 602: Mitä vetoa että seuraava nobelisti tulee Ukrainasta. Täytyy toivoa että ryssät tulee rauhoittamaan meitäkin itärajan yli, niin saadaan FE Sillanpäälle seuraaja. Lyön vetoa että se on sitten itätyttö Sohvi Oxanen.
ellauri204.html on line 682: Lord of the Flies is a 1954 novel by Nobel Prize-winning English author William Golding. The book’s premise focuses on a group of British boys stranded on an uninhabited island and their attempt to govern themselves, with disastrous results. Golding wrote his book as a counterpoint to R.M. Ballantyne’s youth novel The Coral Island, and included specific references to it, such as the rescuing naval officer’s description of the children’s pursuit of Ralph as “a jolly good show, like the Coral Island”.
ellauri204.html on line 688: Bregmanin ottaa esimerkiksi siitä, kuinka meidät saadaan uskomaan ihmisen pahuuteen, Nobel-palkitun kirjailijan William Goldingin luoman synkän ihmiskuvan, jonka tämä esittää Kärpästen herrassa, ja muistuttaa, että todellisuudessa asia on aivan toisin ja kertoo vuosien takaisesta tapauksesta, jossa kuusi (6) poikaa päätyi autiolle saarelle ja he toimivat aivan päinvastoin kuin Goldingin kuvitteellinen koneellinen poikia. Kun pelastajat saapuivat, pojat olivat iloisia ja hyvinvoivia: yhteistyöllä he onnistuivat hankkimaan niin ravintoa kuin juomavettäkin, punttisalin ja sulkiskentän vieläpä. No niin pystyivät Goldinginkin pojat, mutta ne jakautuivat heimoihin, jotka ottivat verisesti yhteen keskenään.
ellauri204.html on line 727: Anne Sexton (born Anne Gray Harvey; November 9, 1928 – October 4, 1974) was an American poet known for her highly personal, confessional verse. She won the Pulitzer Prize for poetry in 1967 for her book Live or Die. Her poetry details her long battle with depression, suicidal tendencies, and intimate details from her private life, including relationships with her husband and children, whom it was later alleged she physically and sexually assaulted.
ellauri204.html on line 731: Sexton later studied with Robert Lowell at Boston University alongside poets Sylvia Plath and George Starbuck. Sexton later paid homage to her friendship with Plath in the 1963 poem "Sylvia's Death".
ellauri204.html on line 739: On October 4, 1974, Sexton had lunch with Kumin to revise galleys for Sexton's manuscript of The Awful Rowing Toward God, scheduled for publication in March 1975 (Middlebrook 396). On returning home she put on her mother's old fur coat, removed all her rings, poured herself a glass of vodka, locked herself in her garage, and started the engine of her car, ending her life by carbon monoxide poisoning. Narsistinen pelle.
ellauri204.html on line 792: Tutustuimme muistaakseni 1997. Paikkana oli varmasti Nuoren Voiman liiton tila Iso-Roballa. Jälleen yhdet vuojut. Saimme illan aikana Arin kanssa nerokkaan idean: yritimme tunkea yhdessä väkivalloin yhtä runoilijakaveria jääkaappiin. Aivan kuin juuri hän olisi kaivannut viilennystä, emme me. Rikoskumppanuutemme oli sinetöity.
ellauri204.html on line 808: Houellebecqin teos Alistuminen (Soumission) ilmestyi samana päivänä 7. tammikuuta 2015 kuin Charlie Hebdon lehteen tehtiin hyökkäys. Houellebecqin kuva oli tuolloin tuoreimman lehden kannessa, ja hänet otettiin poliisisuojelukseen, vaikka ei ollut tiedossa, liittyikö kuva tai tuore kirja iskuun. Houellebecqin teos on saanut ristiriitaisen vastaanoton. Sitä on toisaalta sanottu islamofobiseksi, rasistiseksi ja seksistiseksi ja väitetty sen myötäilevän äärioikeistoa.
ellauri204.html on line 840: Today, at the New York University Woolworth building, filmmakers, NGO staff, foundation representatives and UN agency workers came together to discuss the problem of poverty porn and the potential power of social media to prevent it. The discussion was conducted privately (in accord with so-called Chatham House rules) in order to protect the identity of the participants and encourage a more honest conversation.
ellauri204.html on line 842: Part of the problem here is poverty porn makes money. “The use of poverty porn is a desperate attempt by charities to stay relevant,” said one of the participants. She said that poverty porn exists even within the United States, but it is generally seen through narrow stories about poverty about certain people or areas of the country. She asked how often we heard stories about Appalachia that were not about poor hicks?
ellauri205.html on line 4:
ellauri205.html on line 75: Vaikka Putin jätti Euroopasta Krimin pois, hän ei yksinkertaisesti hylännyt häntä, koska hän toimitti hänelle useita lahjoja. Eka oli joku koru, toinen se robotti Talus joka on jossakin jo mainittu, ainiin Dispenserin jaarituxessa albumissa 140. 3. Euroopan lahja oli koiro nimeltä Laelaps. Laelaps oli koira, joka oli aina tarkoitus saada kiinni jahdattavansa. Seuraavassa sukupolvessa Laelaps lähetettiin jahtaamaan Teumessian Foxia; se oli kettu, jota ei voitu saada kiinni. Tästä seuranneiden saumattomien ja väistämättömien käsitteellisten ongelmien edessä Putin muutti molemmat kiveksi, ennen kuin asetti molemmat kuvansa taivaaseen. Viimeinen lahja oli joku tylsä maaginen keihäs, joka maaliin heitettynä osui aina. Putin on jo ampunut kaikki izeohjautuvat raketit Ukrainaan, loput pannaan menemään ihan summanmutikassa.
ellauri205.html on line 172: Arès est équitable, et il tue ceux qui tuent. Dieu est juste, et tue ceux qui ne croient pas en lui et ne lui obéissent pas. Prâtiquement la même chose.
ellauri205.html on line 174: Ce châtiment d’une rigueur géométrique, qui punit automatiquement l’abus de la force, fut l'objet premier de la méditation chez les Grecs. Il constitue l'âme de l'épopée; sous le nom de Némésis, il est le ressort des tragédies d'Eschyle : les Pythagoriciens, Socrate, Platon, partirent de là pour penser l'homme et l'univers.
ellauri205.html on line 179: Simone ei muka tajua kostonhimoa. Häh sehän on tasoihin pyrkimistä, ellei henk.koht niin tiimin tasolla. Koko Hammurapin laki on tit for tatin teoriaa. Jeesuxen innovaatio oli etme ollaan kaikki yhtä globaalista tiimiä ja oikeet vastustajat on näkymättömiä räyhähenkiä. Eli otetaan vaan vastaan tittiä molemmille poskille kiven tällä puolella, tat tulee sitten kiven takana. Näkis vaan.
ellauri205.html on line 217: Les Romains méprisaient les étrangers, les ennemis, les vaincus, leurs sujets, leurs esclaves; aussi n’ont-ils eu ni épopées ni tragédies. Ils remplaçaient les tragédies par les jeux de gladiateurs. Les Hébreux voyaient dans le malheur le signe du péché et par suite un motif légitime de mépris; ils regardaient leurs ennemis vaincus comme étant en horreur à Dieu même et condamnés à expier des crimes, ce qui rendait la cruauté permise et même indispensable. Aussi, aucun texte de l'Ancien Testament ne rend-il un son comparable à celui de l'épopée grecque, sinon peut-être certaines parties du poème de Job.
ellauri206.html on line 4:
ellauri206.html on line 79: In his Poetics, the unknown Greek philosopher Aristotle argues that kinds of "poetry" (the term includes drama, flute music, and lyre music for Aristotle) may be differentiated in three ways: according to their medium, according to their objects, and according to their mode or "manner" (section I); "For the medium being the same, and the objects the same, the poet may imitate by narration—in which case he can either take another personality as Homer does, or speak in his own person, unchanged—or he may present all his characters as living and moving before us" (section III).
ellauri206.html on line 86: The pandemic has highlighted the failure of the global financial system. Let’s tell it like it is: the global financial system is morally bankrupt. It favours the rich and punishes the poor. Uses them to wipe the floor.
ellauri206.html on line 88: As a result, poorer countries are experiencing their slowest growth in a generation, while middle-income nations are denied debt relief despite surging poverty levels. Most of the world’s poor are women and girls, who are paying a high price in lost healthcare, education and jobs. WTF Gutierres, don't you notice what 4 letter turd you just dropped from your upper sphincter? Grow!? Is this a time for the monkey plague to grow, do you think?
ellauri206.html on line 90: The divergence between developed and developing countries has become systemic – a recipe for instability, crisis and forced migration. These imbalances are not a bug, but a feature of the global financial system.
ellauri206.html on line 92: The measures he has recommended include redirecting Special Drawing Rights - a type of foreign reserve asset - to countries that need help now, a fairer global tax system, and addressing illicit financial flows.
ellauri206.html on line 94: And what happens? Nordic welfare countries are being forced by military threat to join free trade deals that make the global imbalance and injustice just worse.
ellauri206.html on line 95: Sleazy Capital News (Hufvudstadsbladet) in its optimistically titled two-column report "This is how we avoid global warming" left out 2/5 of Gutierres energy recommendations. Only increases in investmets got a mention. What was left out? Well these:
ellauri206.html on line 113: Countries are also encouraged to step up work on lethal autonomous weapons, or “killer robots” or "unmanned drones" as uninformed headline writers may prefer to call them.
ellauri206.html on line 114: Given the sheer number of conflicts across the globe, the Secretary-General called for greater investment in parabellums and peacemakers, underscoring the need for a strong and effective UN.
ellauri206.html on line 123: Tänään juhlittaisiin. Tänään tanssittaisiin ja sädehdittäisiin. Tänään bioninen irakilaispoika vastaanottaisi Amputaatioyhdistyksen myöntämän Toivon lapsi -palkinnon. Sodan runtelema Ali nousisi lavalle, tiedotusvälineiden valokeilaan. Hänen myoelektroninen käsiproteesinsa surahtelisi yleisön edessä, ja hän puhuisi käsittämättömiä sanoja, jotka joku tulkkaisi ymmärrettäväksi puheeksi. Optimistinen Ali kertoisi Irakista. Hän kertoisi kärsineestä kotimaastaan, jonka yltä diktaattorin varjo oli väistynyt. Siellä oli kuuma, siellä oli öljyä ja siellä asui sunnimuslimeja ja shiatsumuslimeja, jotka riitelivät keskenään. Ja nykyään siellä asui myös amerikkalaisia ja brittejä, jotka pitivät haurasta järjestystä yllä henkensä kaupalla ja tarjosivat maalle mahdollisuutta paranemiseen. Maailmanpoliisista oli tullut globaalinen ylilääkäri. Kun kuolio on pitkällä, ainoa ratkaisu on amputaatio. Pelastetaan mikä pelastettavissa on, eli öljyvarat.
ellauri206.html on line 152: Hänelle tehtiin teeveekazojien kustannuxella hoitoa Kuwaitissa ja myöhemmin Lontoossa, jossa hänelle varustettiin robottiproteesit, jotka Kuwaitin hallitus maksoi. Hän ei enää käytä käsiä, koska hän piti niitä liian painavina ja raskaina, vaikka käyttikin keinotekoisia aseita koulun aikana, jotta hän ei kiinnittäisi huomiota itseensä. Hän osallistui Hall Schoolin Wimbledoniin. Limbless Association (LA) perusti rahaston Irakin konfliktin amputoitujen auttamiseksi. Vuonna 2004 Ali Abbas Storyn kirjoitti Alista Jane Warren ja julkaisi Harper Collins. Hänet esitettiin 60 Minutes -ohjelmassa 13. toukokuuta 2007. Hänet esiteltiin Time - lehden syyskuun 2011 numerossa. Todnäk myös Kalutuissa Paloissa.
ellauri206.html on line 158: Raisionrannan pystypanosta doggie style polkupyöräretken tauolla tuli hakematta mieleen vietnamilaisen parin nainti laiturilla. Vaikka temppujärjestys on eri, sillä kaukoidässä aloitetaan aina suihinotolla, siitä perätarjontaan ym akrobaattiasentoihin, tavallinen selinmakuu tulee viimeisenä ja päättyy ruiskahduxeen hoidon mahalle tai naamalle. Muuten hommat ovat yksitoikkoisesti samanlaisia. Alilta ei onnaisi, sillä tarvitaan myös käsiä eikä pelkkää kättäpidempää.
ellauri206.html on line 161: Svengijengi ’62 (engl. American Graffiti), vuonna 1973 ensi-iltansa saanut elokuva, joka on George Lucasin ohjaama ja käsin kirjoittama. Se kertoo tarinan yhdysvaltalaisista teineistä heidän kesälomansa viimeisenä iltana valmistuttuaan high schoolista. (p.o. kesälomansa viimeisenä iltana heidän valmistuttuaan, vittu kukaan ei enää osaa possesiivisuffixeja, lakkaisivat edes yrittämästä.) Tämäkin leffa on mulle n.h. Mikä olis voinut vähemmän kiinnostaa kuin amer. teinileffa vuonna 1973 jolloin viilasin oza hiessä stalinistisen pankinjohtajan tyttären hilloviivaa ja interreilasin Unkarista etelään pieni sininen pahvimatkalaukku kädessä. Eikös ne typerät Star Wars rainat olleet samaisen sentimentaalisen lukaasin käsialaa? Juu sama leuaton harmaa pikku mies on kyseessä. Ronny Howard s. 1954 esitti lukaasia s. 1944. Lukaasin firma on sittemmin myyty Disneyn Waltille. Ylläri. Tirkistely on obsessiivis-kompulsiivista toimintaa. Tästä luvusta tulee mieleen Heli Mätinki 3v aiemmin jossain Turussa, missä mullakin alkoi kalu seistä vastahakoisesti saunassa ja pakenin Petrin lailla uimareissulle vähän äkkiä. Olis pitänyt vaan Petrin lailla ottaa mela kauniiseen käteen ja työntyä käskyn mukaan kaikkeinpyhimpään. Vaikka tuskin oisin pystynyt edes 5 pistoon. Ois takuulla tullut ejaculatio ante portas. Toisaalta toisella kertaa olisi voinut mennä paremmin. Marjan mielestä sukuelimet on hirveä sana. Siinäkin on jotain outoa. Kaikki hahmot toistavat taas Korhosen omia ajatuxia. Marja ei ollut erityisen kaunis mutta auliin panohaluinen.
ellauri206.html on line 163: Vuonna 14 Riku oli sortunut sekakäyttäjäxi. Tehtyään parannuxen ja laihduttuaan 15kg se pääsi vielä kerran häräntappoaseen armoihin, mutta nahkamunax jääneen 2014 finlandiaehdokkaan jälkeen repsahti kai uudestaan. v. 2020 avioeron jälkeen siitä ei ole kuultu mitään. Vaikka päihderiippuvuuksien ja pakko-oireisen häiriön välillä on suuria eroja, niitä yhdistää vapaan tahdon ongelma. Riku oli humanisti joka kaipaa rahaa ja arvovaltaa. Olis ruvennut lääkärix tai toimarixi sitten. Muttei siitä ollut siihen. Se oli ja on tyhjäntoimittaja. Rousseaukin oli luultavasti anaalis-obsessiivinen. Rikusta tuli Apu-lehden senttari. Kuusi nuhjuista biologia ja humanisti, julkisuusviuhahtaja. Jos haluat julkkistohtorixi, kampaa tukkasi. Ja hymyile, perkele. Jos Rikulta kysyisi se vastaisi, juu, olen narsisti. Kova poika ryyppäämään, hiivaa helttaan, hapanta huiviin, kuten runoilija Riza. Kirjailijat käy keikalla tuppukylissä kuten muutkin viihdetaiteilijat. Panelistien jlkeen esiintyisivät kähärä rakkausrunoilija (Tommi Tabermann) ja yhtä kuuluisa murrerunoilija (Heli Laaxonen). Panelistien tehtävä on ensin pitkästyttää maalaisista sappikuset pihalle. Sitten maistuu seniili romantiikka sekä murremarmatus. Happamia ovat kirjailijat toisilleen ja kateita. Tulee mieleen pahantuulinen alivaltiosihteeri Kouvolan kasarminmäellä.
ellauri206.html on line 184: Contre le monde, contre la vie on H. P. Lovecraftia käsittelevä teos. Se sisältää Stephen Kingin (yäk) esipuheen, Houellebecqin pitkän esseen Lovecraftin teoksista ja elämästä ja kaksi Lovecraftin pitkää novellia, "The Call of Cthulhu" ('Cthulhun kutsu') ja "The Whisperer of Darkness" (Kuiskaus pimeässä) ranskaksi käännettyinä. Tästä häiskästä on joku aikaisempi paasaus albumissa 204, jossa ruoditaan Rikun jouzenlaulua. Se näyttää piipunrassilta. Siis Thomas. Tai no molemmat. Sitä on syystä sanottu islamofobiseksi, rasistiseksi ja seksistiseksi ja väitetty sen myötäilevän äärioikeistoa. Oikeus nautintoon (Plateforme, 2001. Suomentanut Ville Keynäs) on täyttä millenniaaliroskaa sekin. Jokaisella ihmisellä on oikeus turvalliseen ja nautinnolliseen seksuaalisuuteen. On tärkeää siis tutkiskella itseään ja opetella tunnistamaan jutut, mitkä tuntuvat itsestä nautinnollisilta. Omaan kehoon kannattaa tutustua rauhassa ja selvittää millainen kosketus tuntuu itsestä nautinnolliselta. Myös vammaisilla on oikeus nautintoon, tunnevammaisilla varsinkin.
ellauri206.html on line 190: Puhtaus, toivo, terveys on Rikusta hyviä sanoja. Se on selkeästi anaalisobsessiivinen. Inna istui samassa jokirannan italialaisraflassa kuin mekin. Me syötiin jotain katkarapupastaa.
ellauri206.html on line 243: Sysmän kirjastossa on uusi vaatimaton mutta viehättävä kirjastonjohtaja, jonka kanssa tuli puhetta Houellebecqistä. Se oli lukenut vähän matkaa Michelin kirjaa Alkeishiukkaset mutta alkoi tympäsemään, jätti kesken. Tolkun ihminen siitä päätellen. Se on ollut Sysmässä kohta vuoden ja pitää työstä, pitäneekö Sysmästä? En huomannut kazoa onko sillä sormusta. Lainasin siltä Wellbeckin 6. romaanin Alistuminen eli Islam. Lisää islamofobiaa ihan takuulla.
ellauri206.html on line 246: Alistuminen, se on Islam suomexi. Wellbeckin sen niminen kirja on väärällään islamofobiaa. Sivulle 18 mennessä Wellbeck on osoittautunut lisäxi jo narsistixi ja misogyynixi. Michel on Riitan ikäinen eli aivan eri sukupolvea kuin me. Sillä on tod.näk. vielä miesten kuukautiset, ei ainakaan andropaussia. Tää kirja on Rikun lekuriromaanin doppelgängeri mitä tulee panovimmaan.
ellauri206.html on line 247: Outoa tai ei oikeasti ollenkaan että islamofobit esiintyvät siionisteina. Onhan vihollinen niillä yhteinen.
ellauri206.html on line 252: IL fréquente le salon de Charles Buet, où il rencontre Jules Barbey d'Aurevilly, Joris-Karl Huysmans, François Coppée, Léon Bloy, Laurent Tailhade et autres cretins. Il rencontre Edmond de Goncourt, avec qui il restera lié jusqu'à la mort de ce dernier en 1896, et qui fut son principal protecteur. Edmond de Goncourt, dans la récente édition complète en 22 volumes du Journal des Goncourt, se montre curieux de toutes les questions sexuelles et particulièrement de l'homophilie. À partir de 1884, Edmond de Goncourt, jusque-là banalement réactionnaire, devient un antisémite enragé, Jésus l'a sauvé après 27 années d'homosexualité. Il se veut esthète et dandy en même temps qu'explorateur tapageux du vice et de la vulgarité, curieux assemblage qui verse souvent dans le pire mauvais goût, et qui lui vaut le mépris hautain de Robert de Montesquiou, dont Lorrain, pour sa part, fait volontiers sa tête de Turc pour sa prétention à l'élégance et à la chasteté. « Lorrain », écrit Léon Daudet dans ses Souvenirs, « avait une tête poupine et large à la fois de coiffeur vicieux, les cheveux partagés par une raie parfumée au patchouli, des yeux globuleux, ébahis et avides, de grosses lèvres qui jutaient, giclaient et coulaient pendant son discours. Son torse était bombé comme le bréchet de certains oiseaux charognards. Lui se nourrissait avidement de toutes les calomnies et immondices. »
ellauri206.html on line 261: Michel molo islamofobi pääsi radioaalloille typerän Charlie Hebdo metakan aikana. Muistan kun tyypit tuli kokouxiinkin keekoillen je suis Charlie napeilla. Vapauxista turhimpia on sananvapaus. Turvat kiinni turvelot!
ellauri206.html on line 272: Theophile Gautier oli paxu partapozo dekadentti. Les premières grandes passions de Teophile Gautier sont Robinson Crusoé ou Paul et Virginie, qui lui font une vive impression. Gautier rencontre a l'ecole le jeune Gérard Labrunie (le futur Gérard de Nerval). À cette époque, il commence à manifester un goût particulier pour les poètes latins tardifs dont la langue étrange le fascine. Il souffre de myopie.
ellauri206.html on line 314: Learn French with the most famous French poems, such as “Demain, dès l’aube”, “La Cigale et la Fourmi”, “Parfum Exotique” with my Classic French Poetry audiobooks.
ellauri206.html on line 320: Born and raised in Paris, I have been teaching today's French to adults for 23+ years in the US and France. Based on my students' goals and needs, I've created unique downloadable French audiobooks focussing on French like it's spoken today, for all levels. Most of my audiobooks are recorded at several speeds to help you conquer the modern French language. Good luck with your studies and remember, repetition is the key!
ellauri206.html on line 446: Ehei, jonninjoutavaan Ortega y Gassettiin ei pidä sekoittaa Petrus Gassendia, ketunnäköistä pikku teologia ja astronomia 1600-luvulta joka vastusti tomisteja, peukutti Hobbesia, Galileita ja Kopernikusta ja joutui Cartesiuxen vihoihin. Koitti sovittaa yhteen Jeesuxen ja Epikuroxen ja sai siitä haukut materialistixi. Näki kuunpimennyxiä ja pyrstötähtiä ja arvioi että aurinko on 1Kx kuuta isompi. Nimitti revontulet Aurora borealixexi. Sellainen lumihiutale. Descartes kelmi kehtas nyysiä vielä sen havainnot muista lumihiutaleista.
ellauri206.html on line 458: « M. Gassendi ayant été toujours si curieux de chercher à justifier par les expériences la vérité des spéculations que la philosophie lui propose, et se trouvant à Marseille en l'an 1641 fit voir sur une galère qui sortit exprèz en mer par l'ordre de ce prince, qu'une pierre laschée du plus haut du mast, tandis que la galère vogue avec toute la vitesse possible, ne tombe pas ailleurs qu'elle ne feroit si la même galère étoit arrêtée et immobile. »
ellauri207.html on line 3:
ellauri207.html on line 69: Nick Cave on säveltänyt myös elokuvamusiikkia. Yhdessä yhtyetoveri Warren Ellisin kanssa hän on säveltänyt musiikin elokuviin The Proposition – Ehdotus (2005) ja Jesse Jamesin salamurha pelkuri Robert Fordin toimesta (2007).
ellauri207.html on line 151: Rob Lowe
ellauri207.html on line 167: Robbie Williams
ellauri207.html on line 172: Näistä on ehkä kädellinen ennestään tuttuja. Vinosuinen Michael Douglas näyttää olevan aika veijari. Douglas and Zeta-Jones hosted the annual Nobel Peace Prize concert in Oslo, Norway, on December 11, 2003. In August 2014, Douglas was one of 200 public figures who were signatories to a letter to The Guardian opposing Scottish independence in the run-up to September´s referendum on that issue.
ellauri207.html on line 202: «Suecia se presenta como una sucursal del infierno, donde los jueces prevarican, los psiquiatras torturan, los policías y espías delinquen, los políticos mienten, los empresarios estafan, y las instituciones en general parecen presa de una pandemia de corrupción de proporciones fujimoristas. Esta obra perdurará porque se trata de ficción de la más amena, con unos personajes perfectamente definidos, que, según me, es lo que importa.» –Mario Vargas Llosa, escritor peruano-.
ellauri207.html on line 208: Musse Pigg comienza a gozar de un merecido prestigio como toyboy profesional, y se encuentra trabajando junto al escritor freelance Svenssonska Dag Bladet en el tráfico de mujeres en Suecia. Lisbeth, en la actualidad la célebre Pippi Calzaslargas, asesina a Dag Bladet y a Nils Tjurman, abogadobogado corrupto, colaborador del Sapo, su violador legal. Stieg, en la actualidad el celebre Mickey Mouse, muere accidentalmente en el fracaso.
ellauri207.html on line 210: El patrimonio de Musse Pigg causo un enfrentamiento entre su esposa por 32 años, la arquitecta Eva Gabrielsson, y Erlan y Joakim Larsson, el padre y hermano del escritor. Éstos últimos fueron los que recibieron la opulenta herencia, la cual incluye los derechos sobe todas las obras del autor, y la capacidad de gestionar lo que dejó por escrito. Sin embargo, Gabrielsson afirma que ella debería ser la poseedora de los bienes ya que ella era la personas más allegada del autor, ya que éste abandonó su hogar familiar a la edad de los 18 años y desde ese entonces se dispuso a vivir con Eva, sin siquiera mantener contacto alguno con su padre ni hermano.
ellauri207.html on line 222: Tapettuaan Dr. Forbesin paska tekotissi palaa folkhemmettiin ja ostaa 7-11 kaupasta nipun globaaleja tuotteita. Maxu tapahtui Visa-kortilla. Alkaa vituttaa koko anti-antisankari. Lispet oli päässyt petoxella käsixi Vennerströmmin suuriin rahoihin ja oli nyt taloudellisesti riippumaton. Ensi töixeen hän osti riippumaton.
ellauri207.html on line 224: Mikki Hiiren ullakkoasunto oli vaan 1 suuri huone. Siellä hän kyllä viihtyisi, Mikin molo poskessa. Äkkirikastuneen laahustajan kukkoilu Nobelmäklarnan toimistossa ja kostoretki netissä on rotinkaisten mieleen. Ei niin että kermaperseilyssä olis jotain vikaa, kuha se olen minä joka kermaperseilen. Rötöstely on aivan paikallaan kuha kohde on myös rikollinen.
ellauri207.html on line 230: Hän ehosti izensä ja pani päähän silmälasit ja blondin peruukin. Siten sonnustautuneena ja Norjan passilla hän ostaa nipun typerillä nimillä varustettuja Ikea-huonekaluja ja niihin kuuluvan lastulevyn aromin. Sänky on Hästens. Saikohan Stieg provikaa myös tuotesijoittelusta? Todennäköisesti kyllä. Lasku oli hieman yli 90K kurnua. Teevee oli kokonaista 18-tuumainen. Hölmö mixei se mennyt norjalaisexi öljyprinsessaxi sonnustautuneena myös Nobel-mäklareihin? Ois saanut palvelua. Ehkä se vaan ihan tahalteen kaivoi verta nenästään. Sai suuttua.
ellauri207.html on line 321: Gunman at Robb elementary school, Uvalde, Texas kills 19 students and two adults before being fatally shot, officials say. Isonenäreikäinen latino meni 18vee syntymäpäivänä viime tiistaina ostamaan 2 kalashnikovia, ampui aluxi isoäitinsä ja törmäili sitten autolla aseita laukoen sisään koulun avoimesta takaovesta ja ammuskeli siellä alakouluikäisiä kaikessa rauhassa tunnin ennenkuin poliisit vaivautui hinaamaan laiskat perseensä paikalle. Eihän se ollut kuin köyhien latinojen keskinäistä kähinää.
ellauri207.html on line 323: Robb Elementary teaches second through fourth grades and had 535 students in the 2020-21 school year, according to state data. About 90% of students are Hispanic and about 81% are economically disadvantaged, the data shows. Thursday was set to be the last day of school before the summer break.
ellauri207.html on line 330: It is the deadliest shooting at a school since the Sandy Hook massacre in Connecticut in 2012 that left 26 people dead, including 20 children between 6 and 7 years old. A big hand to Uvalde and Texas! Robb School Is The Best!
ellauri207.html on line 346: Tuotesijoittelun vuoxi Lisbet pysähtyi Seven Eleveniin (charge: $10K per mention) ja osti: jättipaketin Billyn pannupitsaa (5Kkr tack), 3 Findusin pakastekalapaistosta (3Kkr varsågod), 3 Pågensin pekonipiirasta (2Kkr får jag be), kilon amer. Granny Smith omenia ($1K thanx), 1/2 kg Arla ost, Arla mjölk (totalt 2Kkr), Jacobs Krönung kahvia (1Kkr), kartongin Mallu Lightia ($15K, sorry) ja iltapäivälehdet (DN och Expressen, 0,5kr var). Tähänkin ostoslistaan (ja näitä on vaikka kuinka) Stig sai menemään kirjasta yhden kappaleen, tuotto n. 2Mkr plus filmi- ja sarjiskoikeudet. Rei Shimuran ruumiilla oli jalassa Niken tohvelit, jotka olivat säilyneet teräkunnossa vaikka ruumis oli muuten mätänemistilassa. Kyllä kannattaa ostaa edustamiamme laatumerkkejä.
ellauri210.html on line 4:
ellauri210.html on line 127: La ’Pataphysique est une parodie de science qui apparaît dans Gestes et opinions du docteur Faustroll, pataphysicien, livre écrit par Alfred Jarry en 1897-1898. Elle est alors définie comme la « science des solutions imaginaires qui accorde symboliquement aux linéaments les propriétés des objets décrits par leur virtualité ».
ellauri210.html on line 129: Jarry obtient en 1890 la seconde partie du baccalauréat, mention "Bien". En 1891-1892, il est élève d’Henri Bergson et condisciple de Léon-Paul Fargue et d’Albert Thibaudet au lycée Henri-IV. Il échoue au concours d'entrée à l’École normale supérieure (trois échecs successifs suivis de deux échecs pour la licence ès lettres).
ellauri210.html on line 146: Absolu 28 du 8 septembre au 5 octobre Ce mois inclut l'équinoxe d'automne de l'hémisphère nord, le plus souvent le 14 Absolu (ou 21 septembre), ou le lendemain, certaines années la veille, voire le surlendemain.
ellauri210.html on line 148: Haha 28 du 6 octobre au 2 novembre
ellauri210.html on line 282: Niille jotka haluavat rikastuttaa rakkaan suoman objektiivisen nautinnon kalustusta, olisi kristallipalloja, joiden läpi erottaisi isoisänsä tai kaxoisveljensä aivan nakuna!
ellauri210.html on line 328: - Picasso's First Job was at a Dealer
ellauri210.html on line 365: One of them was the Swiss enema Arthur Cravan. Described by one critic as “a world tramp … a traverser of borders and resister of orders,” Cravan traveled the globe in the early 1900s by forging documents and assuming false identities, preening, harassing, and haranguing, as he went. He was hailed by André Breton as a pivotal precursor of Dadaism, and belonged to that category of floating prewar avant-gardists whose legacy resides more in their mode of living than their artistic creations. Indeed, he declared himself anti-art and avowed boxing to be the ultimate creative expression of the modern, American-tinged age. He’s often referred to as a “poet-boxer,” though he wasn’t especially accomplished as either; his real talent appears to have been making a spectacle of himself, in every sense. Publicist rather than a pugilist.
ellauri210.html on line 369: That journey began in 1903 when, aged sixteen, he was kicked out of his boarding school for an egregious act of indiscipline—according to some, he hit a teacher—and, inspired by his hero Arthur Rimbaud, he left Switzerland in search of adventure. Over the next several years, Cravan took up with hookers in Berlin, hoboed his way from New York to California, and worked in the engine room of a steamship bound for the South Pacific, jumping ship when it docked in Australia. But it was in Paris that the legend of the man we know as Arthur Cravan—writer, brawler, and hoaxer—was cemented. Within the space of six years, he scandalized polite society, infuriated the avant-garde, slugged it out with one of the greatest heavyweights of all time, and then disappeared without a trace.
ellauri210.html on line 375: John Sholto Douglas, 9th Marquess of Queensberry (20 July 1844 – 31 January 1900), was a British nobleman, remembered for his atheism, his outspoken views, his brutish manner, for lending his name to the "Queensberry Rules" that form the basis of modern boxing, and for his role in the downfall of the Irish author and playwright Oscar Wilde.
ellauri210.html on line 383: The money Cravan earned from the Johnson fight helped him buy his passage out of Europe, and what he thought was safety from the war. In January 1917, he sailed for New York. Dozens of other European artists and intellectuals were making the same journey at the time; one of Cravan’s shipmates was Leon Trotsky, who noted in his diary that he’d met a man who claimed to be related to Oscar Wilde and “who frankly declared that he would rather smash a Yankee’s face in the noble art of boxing than be done in by a German.” Cravan didn’t stay in New York long; just long enough to put several noses metsphorically out of joint. He split his time between sleeping rough in Central Park and hobnobbing with Greenwich Village bohemians. Among them was the poet Mina Loy, with whom Cravan began an intense love affair.
ellauri210.html on line 387: Loy referred to Cravan as “Colossus.” It was a reference to the size of his ego as much as that of his "physicality". In her autobiography, she recalled that friends thought her mad to get mixed up with such a conceited, obnoxious prig.
ellauri210.html on line 418: Globaaleja, Des globes,
ellauri210.html on line 471: Jakob van Hoddis, Davidin tähti
ellauri210.html on line 473: Hans Davidsohn (Kunstlername Jakob van Hoddis; * 16. Mai 1887 in Berlin; † 1942 in Sobibór, Generalgouvernement) war ein deutscher Dichter des literarischen Expressionismus. Er ist besonders bekannt für das Gedicht Weltende.
ellauri210.html on line 491: ob_van_Hoddis.JPG/220px-Jacob_van_Hoddis.JPG" />
ellauri210.html on line 495: Als sein Vater 1909 starb, legte er sich das Pseudonym Jakob van Hoddis zu, wobei van Hoddis ein Anagramm seines Nachnamens Davidsohn ist. Von Freunden wurde er oft „Hans den Hoddissohn“ oder „Hoddiskop“ verspottet.
ellauri210.html on line 507: Wegen zunehmender Konflikte mit seiner Familie zog er sich Anfang September selbst in die Kuranstalt in Wolbeck bei Münster zurück, die er Mitte Oktober aber „fluchtartig“ verließ, um nach Berlin zurückzukehren. Hier wurde er derart auffällig, dass er Ende Oktober in die Heilanstalt „Waldhaus“ in Nikolassee bei Berlin verbracht werden musste, so dass sich Erwin Loewenson an einen langjährigen Freund von Kurt Hiller, den Psychiater Arthur Kronfeld in Heidelberg, mit der Bitte um Unterstützung wandte. Unter dem Titel Gewaltsam ins Irrenhaus war diese Zwangseinweisung Anlass für ein Medienecho – zu einer Zeit allerdings, als van Hoddis schon aus der Anstalt „entwichen“ war. Außerdem studierte er noch die griechische Mythologie und deren Fabelstrukturen. Jedoch hörte er vor dem Ausbruch seiner Krankheit im Herbst 1914 völlig mit der Nutzung der mythologischen Terminologie auf.
ellauri210.html on line 511: Im Jahr der nationalsozialistischen „Machtergreifung“ 1933 emigrierte van Hoddis’ Mutter mit seinen Schwestern Marie und Anna ebenfalls nach Palästina. Van Hoddis mussten sie aufgrund seines Zustandes zurücklassen. Am 29. September 1933 wurde van Hoddis in die „Israelitischen Heil- und Pflegeanstalten“ Bendorf-Sayn bei Koblenz verlegt. In dieser Anstalt wurden ab 1940 der größte Teil von jüdischen psychiatrischen Patienten im deutschen Reich konzentriert. Zu diesem Zeitpunkt war Hoddis wegen seiner hebephrenen Schizophrenie im Endstadium nicht mehr ansprechbar.
ellauri210.html on line 513: Er baute in den letzten Jahren körperlich immer mehr ab und verhielt sich (im Vergleich zu anderen Patienten) verhältnismäßig unauffällig, grüßte Tiere, die er beim Spazieren traf, spielte Schach und rauchte viel. Sein Umfeld sowie seine Umgebung nahm er nicht mehr wahr. Am 30. April 1942 wurde er von dort in den Distrikt Lublin im von der Wehrmacht besetzten Polen deportiert und – höchstwahrscheinlich im Vernichtungslager Sobibór – im Mai oder Juni desselben Jahres im Alter von 55 Jahren ermordet. Gute Wahl, Lotte.
ellauri210.html on line 575: Kurt Hiller (* 17. August 1885 in Berlin; † 1. Oktober 1972 in Hamburg) war ein deutscher Schriftsteller, pazifistischer Publizist und Aktivist der ersten Schwulenbewegung. Er kämpfte lebenslang für einen schopenhauerschen und antihegelianisch begründeten Sozialismus, für Frieden und sexuelle Minderheiten.
ellauri210.html on line 580: In Berlin wurde Kurt Hiller als freier Schriftsteller zum frühen Pionier des literarischen Expressionismus: 1909 gründete er mit Jakob van Hoddis als ein Gründungsmitglied die Vereinigung Der Neue Club, zu dem bald auch Georg Heym und Ernst Blass stießen. Gemeinsam mit ihnen und unterstützt von bekannteren Künstlern wie Tilla Durieux, Else Lasker-Schüler und Karl Schmidt-Rottluff wurden sogenannte „Neopathetische Cabarets“ veranstaltet. Nachdem Hiller sich aus dem Club zurückgezogen hatte, gründete er mit Blass das literarische Cabaret GNU. Für die Zeitschriften PAN und Der Sturm schrieb er zahlreiche Beiträge, ebenso wie für Franz Pfemferts Aktion, bei deren Gründung er 1911 auch mitwirkte. Nachdem Hiller – wahrscheinlich über die Vermittlung Kronfelds, der seit 1908 in Heidelberg lebte – 1911 in der Beilage Literatur und Wissenschaft der regionalen Heidelberger Zeitung schon Die Jüngst Berliner vorgestellt hatte, publizierte er 1912 im Heidelberger Verlag von Richard Weissbach die erste expressionistische Lyrikanthologie Der Kondor.
ellauri210.html on line 583: 1919 gründete Kurt Hiller zusammen mit Armin T. Wegner den Bund der Kriegsdienstgegner (BdK), dem 1926 auch die renommierte Pazifistin Helene Stöcker beitrat. 1920 trat er der Deutschen Friedensgesellschaft bei, zu deren linkem Flügel er gehörte. Hier trat er dafür ein, dass sich der deutsche Pazifismus an der Sowjetunion orientieren müsse, obwohl er deren Leninismus sehr kritisch gegenüberstand. Da die Mehrheit aber auf das bürgerlich-demokratische Frankreich ausgerichtet blieb, kam es zu heftigen Konflikten in der DFG, die eskalierten, als Hiller in kommunistischen Blättern den bürgerlichen Pazifisten Friedrich Wilhelm Foerster und Fritz Küster vorwarf, sie würden sich von den Franzosen bezahlen lassen – eine Unterstellung, die den zahlreichen rechten Gegnern der deutschen Friedensbewegung reichlich Munition für ihre Polemik gab. Max Jakobsson schrieb bekummert an Peter Panther:
ellauri210.html on line 702: Koko elämänsä aikana Savinio sävelsi viisi oopperaa ja kirjoitti vähintään 47 kirjaa, mukaan lukien useita omaelämäkertoja ja muistelmia. Hän myös kirjoitti ja tuotti laajasti teoksia teatterille. Hänen työnsä saivat ristiriitaisia arvioita hänen elinaikanaan, usein johtuen liian laaja-alaisesta modernististen tekniikoiden käytöstä. Hän sai vaikutteita ja oli Apollinairen , Picasson, Jean Cocteaun, Max Jacobin ja Fernand Légerin aikalainen, ja hänellä oli kova yritys mukaan surrealistiseen liikkeeseen.
ellauri210.html on line 778: An autobiographical work by Michel del Castillo, a Spanish born writer who writes in French, Tanguy is a powerfully moving novel highly reminiscent of The Diary of Anne Frank (due mainly to the child's point of view as opposed to that of the adult). Narrating in first person, the story of a young Spanish boy, Tanguy, the novel is set against the backdrop of the war.
ellauri210.html on line 831: The word “Dada” brings to mind an international range of extreme modernist antics. The book’s title is something of a publicist’s misnomer. Jacques Rigaut is the only confirmed suicide among the group, and while Jacques Vache did die of a drug overdose, many, including author Michel Leiris, claimed that his death was accidental, characterized as deliberate by those aiming to enhance Vache’s cultural cache. Arthur Cravan and Julian Torma simply disappeared, wandering into, rather than jumping towards, the cracks of avant-garde history. Of the four only Rigaut is genuinely obsessed with themes of self-destruction.
ellauri210.html on line 850: "Richard Cory" is a narrative poem written by Edwin Arlington Robinson. It was first published in 1897, as part of The Children of the Night, having been completed in July of that year; and it remains one of Robinson's most popular and anthologized poems. The poem describes a person who is wealthy, well educated, mannerly, and admired by the people in his town. Despite all this, he takes his own life.
ellauri210.html on line 863: Fils d'un cadre du grand magasin Le Bon Marché, il est d’abord un élève brillant au lycée Montaigne, où il obtient un prix de récitation et de français, puis il devient passable et dissipé au lycée Louis-le-Grand où il se fait remarquer par son excentricité.
ellauri210.html on line 869: En 1929 il entreprend une série de cures de désintoxication, infructueuses, en clinique à La Malmaison, puis en août à Saint-Mandé. En octobre, il entre dans une maison de repos à Châtenay-Malabry appelée « La Vallée aux loups » (qui fut la maison de Chateaubriand).
ellauri210.html on line 991: En 1932, à l'initiative du communiste Paul Vaillant-Couturier, Jacques Prévert est sollicité par le groupe Octobre pour écrire des textes contestataires d’agitation-propagande. Sa verve, son humour, son aisance à rédiger très rapidement sur des sujets d’actualité brûlants, font la notoriété du groupe. Le plus célèbre de ces textes, La Bataille de Fontenoy, présenté en 1933 aux Olympiades internationales du théâtre ouvrier à Moscou, devant Staline), se moque des hommes politiques de l’époque.
ellauri210.html on line 992: À l'été 1932, la troupe est invitée à Moscou d'où Jacques Prévert ne revient pas militant communiste. Toute sa vie, Jacques Prévert témoigne d'un engagement politique sincère. Surréaliste inclassable, certains observateurs n'hésitent pourtant pas à l'apparenter au courant libertaire : anarchiste de cœur, Prévert se dit « rêveur » ou « artisan » plutôt que « poète ».
ellauri210.html on line 1092: Dalí tomó al famoso doble de Hollywood, Russ Saunders, como modelo para pintar a Cristo, aunque hay quien afirma que el artista tomó como modelo en realidad al trapecista Diego Schmiedl. Esta es posiblemente, la obra más humana y humilde que se ha pintado sobre la Crucifixión de Cristo. Aunque, también, podríamos afirmar que la perspectiva del observador que ve a Cristo desde arriba, es decir desde donde podría verlo Dios Padre, coloca al artista en ese papel.
ellauri210.html on line 1140: En vano la escritura de Prassinos fue considerada por los surrealistas como “escritura automática” que bien entendida nada tiene que ver con el azar, sino con la capacidad de liberar el pensamiento, lejos de cualquier convención y norma. Estos personajes muestran sus obsesiones sin pudor.
ellauri210.html on line 1165: Jean-Pierre Duprey (1 January 1930 in Rouen – 2 October 1959 in Paris) was a French poet and sculptor, one of the modern examples of a poète maudit (accursed poet).
ellauri210.html on line 1177: Carlos Paul Ruiz São Paulosta symppaa Jannea. “Derriere Son Double”, Este volumen de poemas, saludado con entusiasmo por Breton, es sin duda uno de los más importantes de la poesía francesa de los últimos tiempos. Por lo que dice y lo que revela constituye el testimonio apasionante de un espíritu (que aún no había alcanzado la veintena) obsesionado por la idea de las tinieblas que nos rodean. Es cierto que los términos “vide”, “gouffre”, “abime”, habían pasado sobre todo a partir de Víctor Hugo (recordemos su famoso verso “J’interrogue l’abime etant moi-même gouffre”) a ser tópicos de una cierta retórica ajenas a sus verdaderos significados. Mas en Duprey subanse por las paredes. Para rendir cuentas de su visión de las tinieblas, Duprey se inclina a la práctica y a la expresión de un cierto humor negro que llevó a Breton a incluirlo en su famosa antología.
ellauri210.html on line 1226: The French essayist Michel Eyquem de Montaigne’s famous tome Les Essais became celebrated in its age, even being quoted by William Shakespeare in The Tempest. At the core of the collection of writings was “De l’amitie” (“On Friendship”). La Boetie enjoyed a certain level of fame, achieved through political discourses, when he met Montaigne around 1557 and the two would spend four years together, at which time the principles of civil disobedience in matters of love became instilled in Montaigne, according to Robert Aldrich and Garry Wotherspoon’s Who’s Who in Gay and Lesbian History. But La Boetie would succumb to the plague, and Montaigne would write that he never experienced such love again.
ellauri210.html on line 1238: George Bernard Shaw (26. heinäkuuta 1856 Dublin, Irlanti – 2. marraskuuta 1950 Hertfordshire, Englanti) oli irlantilaissyntyinen, brittiläinen näytelmäkirjailija, jolle myönnettiin Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinto vuonna 1925. Hänen tunnetuin näytelmänsä on Pygmalion (1912), jonka pohjalta on tehty elokuva Pygmalion (1938) ja yhdysvaltalainen musikaali My Fair Lady. Shaw sai Pygmalionin elokuvakäsikirjoituksesta parhaan sovitetun käsikirjoituksen Oscar-palkinnon, ja hän on ensimmäinen henkilö, joka on palkittu sekä kirjallisuuden Nobelilla että Oscarilla.
ellauri210.html on line 1250: George Shaw, known at his insistence as Bernard Shaw, was an Irish playwright, critic, polemicist and political activist. His influence on the Western hemisphefre, culture and politics extended from the 1880s to his death and beyond. He wrote more than sixty plays, including major works such as Man and Superman (1902), Pygmalion (1913) and Saint Joan (1923). With a range incorporating both contemporary satire and historical allegory, Pshaw became the leading dramatist of his generation, and in 1925 was awarded the Nobel Prize in Literature.
ellauri210.html on line 1268: In 1938 he provided the screenplay for a filmed version of Pygmalion for which he received an Academy Award. He died, aged ninety-four, having refused all state honours, except the Nobel prize and the Oscar.
ellauri210.html on line 1272: Shaw was born at 3 Upper Synge Street in Portobello, a lower-middle-class part of Dublin. The Shaw family was of English descent and belonged to the dominant Protestant Ascendancy in Ireland. George Carr Shaw, Bernir's dad, an ineffectual alcoholic, was among the family's less successful members. By the time of Shaw's birth, his mother had become close to George John Lee, a flamboyant figure well known in Dublin's musical circles. Shaw retained a lifelong obsession that Lee might have been his biological father. Shaw made a negligible income from writing, and was subsidised by Lee plus his mother. In 1881, for the sake of economy, and as a matter of principle, he became a vegetarian. He grew a beard to hide a facial scar left by smallpox.
ellauri210.html on line 1277: My friend responded saying that gay men and women have dependent relationships all the time and it absolutely does not mean the man is not gay or that he is falling for her. Today we call this a 'hag' and they routinely do for women the things Higgins did for Eliza, (make her more fashionable, improve her appeal to men, etc). I am not saying he absolutely was gay, in fact I still think its probable he's not, but its definitely something to consider.
ellauri210.html on line 1306: Mansour, lejos de generar o de seguir con la imagen de la mujer creada por André Bretón incluye la belleza fatal, entendida como una belleza herida, lejos del principio de Narciso. Junto con Gisèle Prassinos y Lise Deharme proceden a crear una renovación estética en la literatura surrealista. Adjetivos como “laid(e)”, “malade”, “malformé(e)” serán típicos de estas autoras que elaboran un reflejo femenino escribiendo sobre “antiNadjas” als gegen Bretons Roman verfasste Anti Nadja.
ellauri210.html on line 1310: It is based on Breton's actual "interactions" with a young woman, Nadja (actually Léona Camille Ghislaine Delacourt 1902–1941), over the course of ten days, and is presumed to be a semi-autobiographical description of his relationship with a patient of Pierre Janet. The book's non-linear structure is grounded in reality by references to other Paris surrealists such as Louis Aragon and 44 photographs. Tästä E. Saarinen lie ottanut postmodernia mallia.
ellauri210.html on line 1316: The narrator, randomly named André, ruminates on a number of Surrealist principles, before ultimately commencing (around a third of the way through the novel) on a narrative account, generally linear, of his brief ten-day affair with the titular character Nadja. She is so named “because in Russian it's the beginning of the word hope, and because it's only the beginning,” but her name might also evoke the Spanish "Nadie," which means "No one." The narrator becomes obsessed with this woman with whom he, upon a chance encounter while walking through the street, strikes up conversation immediately. He becomes reliant on daily rendezvous, occasionally culminating in romance (a kiss here and there). His true fascination with Nadja, however, is her vision of the world, which is often provoked through a discussion of the work of a number of Surrealist artists, including himself. While her understanding of existence subverts the rigidly authoritarian quotidian, it is later discovered that she is mad and belongs in a sanitarium. After Nadja reveals too many details of her past life, she in a sense becomes demystified, and the narrator realizes that he cannot continue their relationship.
ellauri210.html on line 1318: In the remaining quarter of the text, André distances himself from her corporeal form and descends into a meandering rumination on her absence, so much so that one wonders if her absence offers him greater inspiration than does her presence. It is, after all, the reification and materialization of Nadja as an ordinary person that André ultimately despises and cannot tolerate to the point of inducing tears. There is something about the closeness once felt between the narrator and Nadja that indicated a depth beyond the limits of conscious rationality, waking logic, and sane operations of the everyday. There is something essentially “mysterious, improbable, unique, bewildering” about her; this reinforces the notion that their propinquity serves only to remind André of Nadja's impenetrability. Her eventual recession into absence is the fundamental concern of this text, an absence that permits Nadja to live freely in André's conscious and unconscious, seemingly unbridled, maintaining her paradoxical role as both present and absent. With Nadja's past fixed within his own memory and consciousness, the narrator is awakened to the impenetrability of reality and perceives a particularly ghostly residue peeking from under its thin veil. Thus, he might better put into practice his theory of Surrealism, predicated on the dreaminess of the experience of reality within reality itself. Nadja Nadja soromnoo.
ellauri210.html on line 1320: Alejadas de la maternidad y de casi todo aquello que les da la entidad de mujer, tanto Mansour como Prassinos saben que la “femme-enfant” es algo más que un bello objeto para admirar. Estas autoras desarrollan un concepto de belleza, de sexo y género difuminados, donde entra en juego la noción de identidad y alteridad. Así mismo implica una idea de subversión femenina que se aleja definitivamente del concepto bretoniano de la mujer.
ellauri210.html on line 1322: Para las dos escritoras la pulsión de amor y muerte será necesaria y la plasmarán cada una a su manera, pero coincidirán en el pensamiento que Murielle Gagnebin retoma de Bataille: “L’essence de l’érotisme est la souillure” (Gagnebin, 1994) y es que no hay belleza ni erotismo sin mácula. Sobre todo Joyce Mansour quien seduce con personajes de inclinaciones sadomasoquistas y pulsiones sangrientas.
ellauri210.html on line 1325: Joyce Mansour y Gisèle Prassinos crean bellos monstruos. Han sustituido la belleza convencional dando prioridad a esta “laideur” que está en comunión con la crueldad y el erotismo, siempre rodeada de una pátina macabra. Las dos autoras, bajo esta categoría estética han dado paso a un viaje interior, el que proporcionan sus seres deformes, enfermos, en un ejercicio catártico. El objetivo será para las dos el mismo: exorcizar el miedo, la muerte y la angustia.
ellauri210.html on line 1327: De esta forma, el universo de estas mujeres está poblado de un bestiario que crea un repertorio estético complejo, que se prolonga como algo negativo en general, como una transgresión de la moral y de las normas.
ellauri210.html on line 1334: En Prassinos también funciona el complejo inverso, como el relato “Vanda et le Parasite” [1] que ofrece una original lectura sobre el padre castrador. El padre, al nacer coloca un gusano sobre los cabellos de Vanda. Este acto será valorado como una metáfora del miedo a la autoridad masculina, empleando los términos de Barnet “cannibalisée par l’autorité patriarcale”.
ellauri210.html on line 1336: La imagen del padre es central en el ámbito de la obsesiones, juega un papel esencial en el subconsciente de la autora. Desarrolla una revisión muy particular sobre el mito de Electra. En las dos autoras es frecuente encontrar imágenes criminales, de pesadilla, aderezadas con humor negro y erotismo, especialmente en Mansour, para quien el erotismo frenético es la fuerza motora de sus personajes.
ellauri210.html on line 1338: Joyce Mansour se podría definir como “abyecto”, retomando la definición de Julia Kristeva, (Kristeva, 1980) sería “el objeto caído”. El universo mansouriano seduce con sus seres desviados, se metamorfosea en monstruo o animal, casi siempre asociados a los animales que más repulsión suscitan, pero que a la vez se convierte en modelo de seducción, retomando el término de Barnet sería una “anti-seducción” un “ bestiaire pour déplaire”.
ellauri210.html on line 1344: Gisèle Prassinos también nos ha dejado unas buenas dosis de personajes desordenados, donde afloran ciertas desviaciones. En ese “collage” entre cuentos de hadas y aromas baudelerianos, la autora jugará sobre todo con la metamorfosis, así sus mujeres “pseudo-femmes castratrices” se transforman en animales o en seres extraños, fantásticos. Prassinos ataca a los mitos del psicoanálisis, muestra imágenes híbridas, animales que se convierten en hombre, objetos que se convierten en animales, etc. Destaca la hostilidad hacia la figura autoritaria del padre. Nos habla de venganzas mediante el asesinato, los cuerpos difuntos son despedazados o transformados, dejando traslucir sentimientos intensos, donde se perfila la imagen de la muerte y se exorciza el miedo. La misma autora confesaba en una entrevista personal la distancia que había entre ella y su padre, destacando la importancia que tiene la figura masculina en las culturas orientales, sensación que refleja en el cuento “La Tête” (op. cit., 1987): “Lucas vit qu’entre elle et son père s’ouvrait un écart plus large que ceux qui séparaient les autres personnes”.
ellauri210.html on line 1346: Prassinos, heredera de los cuentos tradicionales de hadas contamina su imaginario con personajes desviados, transformándolos en “contes bizarres”. En un marco irreal, típico de los cuentos surrealistas juega con las metamorfosis: objetos que adquieren dimensión animal, humanos que se animalizan, animales que se transforman en humanos, o personas que se reapropian de otras, como muestran algunos de sus cuentos, como “la Psyché” donde la protagonista sufre por parte de otra mujer una apropiación de su voluntad, de su personalidad, llegando a ser su doble. Como en el estadio del espejo de Lacan, la protagonista reacciona al contemplar su imagen, no ante el espejo, sino ante la otra mujer: “Nous étions plus que jumelles et nous nous regardions subjuguées, chacune dans le miroir humain que lui tendait l’autre”.
ellauri210.html on line 1355: El problema de la identidad es muy habitual en Gisèle Prassinos, hay una tendencia a crear personajes de géneros no definidos o seres desexualizados, así como descorporalizados.
ellauri210.html on line 1360: El monstruo es un ser complejo, no banal, que nos hace obtener resultados de nuestro yo profundo y oscuro, implica mutaciones pero también continuidades de sentido. Monsters have an interesting life, they don't work from 9 to 5. La subversion des images inattendues du corps féminin, sénile ou malade, se trouve particulièrment troublante chez Prassinos et Mansour. Como vemos, las dos autoras se sirven de un imaginario sórdido para expresar aquello que les duele.
ellauri210.html on line 1380: In 1954, Joyce Mansour became involved with the surrealist movement after Jean-Louise Bédouin wrote a review praising Cris in Médium: Communication surréaliste that May. Joyce Mansour actively participated in the second wave of surrealism in Paris. Her apartment was a popular meeting place for members of the surrealist group. L'exécution du testament du Marquis de Sade, the performance piece by Jean Benoît took place in Mansour’s apartment, where she "collaborated" with obscure minor representatives such as Pierre Alechinsky, Enrico Baj, Hans Bellmer, Gerardo Chávez, Jorge Camacho, Ted Joans, Pierre Molinier, Reinhoud d'Haese and Max Walter Svanberg.
ellauri210.html on line 1430: Kuin säteilevä molo harmaa mälli yllä Tel le phallus scintillant enrobé de foutre gris
ellauri211.html on line 4:
ellauri211.html on line 88: Avaan toiveikkaana seuraavan Rei Shimura-tarinan. Nyt saa taas suuttua! Naisnarsismi hulvahtaa kasvoille heti alkusivuilta sakeana kuin DC:n savuisen yöklubin naistenhuoneen höyrähdys. Milli-Molli jää lähtötelineisiin kuin tikku paskaan. Tuttu kivahteleva anaalis-obsessiivinen apinanaama kurkistaa ökytaxin ovesta. Koko yöklubi on varattu sen 30v syntymäpäiville. Turhaan skotti Hugh puuhaa sekä hääräilee, Rei päätyy kohta kuitenkin koppalakkiseen jenkkisotilaaseen, kuten intialaissaxalainen Sujata izekin. Se on muuten nyttemmin lakannut väsäämästä näitä epäuskottavia japsudekkareita, nyze on omasta mielestään tunnetumpi intialaissankaristaan, jostain Pervosta. Rein uusi hovimestariystävä menee porttivornikaxi ettei juhliin livahda maxuttomia vieraita. Mauttomat kuzuvieraat riittävät. Järjestelyt ovat kuin Riku Rinkulan synttäreillä Eirassa.
ellauri211.html on line 133: Alexander Calder´s “Mountains and Clouds” was installed in the Hart Senate Office Building in 1986. Aluminum clouds originally suspended as a mobile over the steel mountains were removed in 2014 as unsafe for the public. It was too expensive for public funds so private moneymen came to the rescue. Senaattori Snowden Harp näyttää juuri siltä kuin jalkansa Vietnamiin jättäneen senaattorin kuuluu näyttää vanhana. Michael ansaizi pronssitähden Irakin ryöstöretkellä. Kylläpäs Sujatasta on sukeutunut isänmaallinen. Vaikka se on mamu, tai varmaan juuri sixi. En petä luottamustasi mutta kotiasi kuunnellaan. Onko Michael pyytänyt sinua tekemään jotain laitonta? Eikö? (pettyneesti). Miten teillä menee Hughin kanssa? Kysyn vaikka tiedän, kotiasi kuunnellaan. Onnexi en tullut synttäreillesi. Kiihkeästä vapaamielisyydestään huolimatta senaattori varjeli julkista kuvaansa. Olin alkanut pitää hänen varovaisuuttaan aidon älykkyyden merkkinä. Harp tietää jotakin, mietin hyvästellessäni hänet. Mutta tehän rikotte kansalaisoikeuxiani! Niin niin, talk to the hand. Sentään saat kantaa konetuliasetta ja pitää sikiösi. Count your blessings.
ellauri213.html on line 4:
ellauri213.html on line 62: Dma-lapset eivät tunne häpeää eivätkä ole ylpeitä. Se on hyvin paha. Häpeä on peitettävä siionistien verellä. Isä olisi ylpeä kameleontistaan. Kunnia on pelastettava. Sählämit GT ja ilman kärhämöivät silmittömästi arvottomasta maapalasta. Public displays of aggression. Dan on erittäinkin kyyninen. Venäläiset ovat pahoja. Kuubalaiset hoitavat likaisen työn KGBn puolesta. Danilla on likainen mielikuvitus. Dankin paistatteli mielellään kameroiden loisteessa kuin Ranu Pajala. Mikähän siinä oikein viehättää? Kysy peipolta. Ja kysynkin. Se vastaa: lähtee hereästi pillua. Vanha Dan on vanhan jutkun näköinen. Siitä tuli konsulentti, globalisaation agentti. Aziz the combat fighter söi epähuomiossa sikanautapurilaisia. Ei olis kannattanut.
ellauri213.html on line 195: behaviours - the main obsession will be that of demand
ellauri213.html on line 204: Let’s first look at direct demands. Direct demands are requests or questions made by other people or situations – such as ‘put your shoes on’, ‘sit here and wait’, ‘pay this bill’ or ‘would you like a drink?’. In addition to these more obvious direct demands, there’s a whole raft of indirect and internal demands, including:
ellauri213.html on line 230: Things we want to do – like hobbies, seeing friends or special occasions – so not just the things we might not want to do like housework or homework.
ellauri213.html on line 246: The standing adjudication in English common law is that, as dying is an inevitable consequence of life, the right to life under the Convention necessarily implies the obligation to let nature take its course. Everyone has the right to die slowly, painfully and horribly.
ellauri213.html on line 248: Girlguiding (Peukaloiset) is the operating name of The Guide Association, previously named The Girl Guides Association and is the national guiding organisation of the United Kingdom. It is the UK's largest girl-only youth organisation. Girlguiding is a charitable organisation. Founded 1910 by Robert Baden-Powell in bulging shorts and Agnes Baden-Powell in mini skirts, Girlguiding is a member of World Association of Girl Guides and Girl Scouts (WAGGGS) - the largest women's organisation in the world
ellauri213.html on line 254: In 1908, Baden-Powell's book Scouting for Boys came out in Russia by the order of Tsar Nicholas II. It was called Young Scout (Юный Разведчик, Yuny Razvedchik). On April 30 [O.S. April 17] 1909, a young officer, Colonel Oleg Pantyukhov, organized the first Russian Scout troop Beaver (Бобр, Bobr) in Pavlovsk, a town near Tsarskoye Selo, St. Petersburg region. In 1910, Baden-Powell visited Nicholas II in Tsarskoye Selo and they had a very pleasant conversation, as the Tsar remembered it. In 1914, Pantyukhov established a society called Russian Scout (Русский Скаут, Russkiy Skaut). The first Russian Scout campfire was lit in the woods of Pavlovsk Park in Tsarskoye Selo. A Russian Scout song exists to remember this event. Scouting spread rapidly across Russia and into Siberia, and by 1916, there were about 50,000 Scouts in Russia. Nicholas' son Tsarevich Aleksei was a Scout himself.
ellauri213.html on line 256: With the advent of communism after the October Revolution of 1917, and during the Russian Civil War from 1917 to 1922, most of the Scoutmasters and many Scouts fought in the ranks of the White Army and interventionists against the Red Army.
ellauri213.html on line 311: The Sun ceased publishing topless Page 3 images in its Republic of Ireland edition in 2013, in its UK editions in 2015, and on its Page3.com website in 2017. The Daily Star also ceased publishing images of topless glamour models in 2019. However, these decisions were not necessarily a direct result of the No More Page 3 campaign. The then official photographer for Page 3, Alison Webster, also criticised the campaign, saying "people should be able to make their own choices". Prime Minister David Cameron replied, "I think on this one I think it is probably better to leave it to the consumer."
ellauri213.html on line 331: Had Khaled ever apologized for her role in the hijackings or taken steps to show that she is committed to nonviolent efforts to achieve her desired end of driving the invasive Israeli species from her land, I would not object to her speaking at San Francisco State. People who genuinely learn often make the best teachers. But even after 50 years, Khaled has never expressed remorse or disavowed her actions or those of her comrades. Neither have I for 3000 years of Israeli mass murder of poor Philistines, so there! Never forget, never learn!
ellauri213.html on line 335: In theory, San Francisco State University President Lynn Mahoney is correct in stating that a university is a place where different ideas are presented, discussed and analyzed so that individual conclusions can be drawn. But does that justify giving an unrepentant terrorist a forum to address the students? What will she teach them? The proper way to hijack an aircraft, based on her success in 1969, and what mistakes to avoid based on her failure in 1970? When I was a student in university, I often faced new ideas that ran contrary to my beliefs. But these perspectives were presented by knowledgeable, respectable academics. Some were Nobel Prize winners. None were terrorists. Most of them were Jews.
ellauri213.html on line 377: Mikhail Ivanovich Kalinin, known familiarly by Soviet citizens as "Kalinych", was a Soviet politician and Old Bolshevik revolutionary. He served as head of state of the Russian Soviet Federative Socialist Republic and later of the Soviet Union from 1919 to 1946. From 1926, he was a member of the Politburo of the Communist Party of the Soviet Union. Born to a peasant family, Kalinin worked as a metal worker in Saint Petersburg and took part in the 1905 Russian Revolution as an early member of the Bolsheviks. During and after the October Revolution, he served as mayor of Petrograd. After the revolution, Kalinin became the head of the new Soviet state, as well as a member of the Central Committee of the Communist Party and the Politburo. Kalinin remained the titular head of state of the Soviet Union after the rise of Joseph Stalin, but held little real power or influence. He retired in 1946 and died in the same year.
ellauri213.html on line 379: Königsberg was the easternmost large city in Germany until World War II. The city was heavily damaged by Allied bombing in 1944 and during the Battle of Königsberg in 1945; it was then captured by the Soviet Union on 9 April 1945. The Potsdam Agreement of 1945 placed it under Soviet administration. The city was renamed to Kaliningrad in 1946 in honor of Soviet revolutionary Mikhail Kalinin. Since the dissolution of the Soviet Union, it has been governed as the administrative centre of Russia's Kaliningrad Oblast, the westernmost oblast of Russia.
ellauri213.html on line 381: The original German population fled or was expelled towards the end of World War II, when the territory was annexed by the Soviet Union, and in the following few years. In October 1945, only about 5,000 Soviet civilians lived in the territory. Between October 1947 and October 1948 approximately 100,000 Germans were forcibly moved to Germany [clarification needed], and by 1948 about 400,000 Soviet civilians had arrived in the Oblast.
ellauri213.html on line 385: Poland and the Russian Federation have an agreement whereby residents of Kaliningrad and the Polish cities of Olsztyn, Elbląg and Gdańsk may obtain special cards permitting repeated travel between the two countries, crossing the Polish–Russian border. As of July 2013, Poland had issued 100,000 of the cards. That year, the influx of Russians visiting Poland to shop at the Biedronka and Lidl supermarkets was novel enough to be featured in songs by musical group Parovoz.
ellauri213.html on line 414: Once described as “the empress of terror”, Fusako Shigenobu founded the Japanese Red Army, a radical leftist group that carried out armed attacks worldwide in support of the Palestinian cause.
ellauri213.html on line 415: On Saturday, 76-year-old Shigenobu left the prison in Tokyo with her daughter as several supporters held a banner saying “We love Fusako”.
ellauri213.html on line 416: “I apologise for the inconvenience my arrest has caused to so many people,” Shigenobu said after the release. “It’s half a century ago ... but we caused damage to innocent people who were strangers to us by prioritising our battle, such as by hostage-taking.”
ellauri213.html on line 419: In discussion of science fiction, a Big Dumb Object (BDO) is any mysterious object, usually of extraterrestrial or unknown origin and immense power, in a story which generates an intense sense of wonder by its mere existence. To a certain extent, the term deliberately deflates this.
ellauri213.html on line 421: obu-e9878de4bfa1-e688bfe5ad90.jpg" />
ellauri213.html on line 434: Seuraavassa on listattuna pahoja naisia rikkomuxineen (kuvissa söpöset alleviivattu): Irma Grese (Naziwächterin), Myra Hindley (serial pedocide), Isabela of Castile (born in the year 1451 and died in 1504, Isabella the Catholic, was queen of Castile and León. She and her husband, Ferdinand II of Aragon, brought stability to the kingdoms that became the basis for the unification of Spain. Isabella and Ferdinand are known for completing the Reconquista, ordering conversion or exile of their Muslim and Jewish subjects and financing Christopher Columbus’ 1492 voyage that led to the opening of the “New World”. Isabella was granted the title Servant of God by the Catholic Church in 1974), Beverly Allitt (pedocide, Angel of Death), Queen Mary of England (catholic), Belle Gunness (norwegian-american serial killer), Mary Ann Cotton (serial killer), Ilse Koch (Lagerfrau), Katherine Knight (very bad Aussie), Elizabeth Bathory (hungarian noblewoman and serial killer), Sandra Avila Beltran (drugs), Patty Hearst (hänen isoisänsä oli lehtikeisari William Randolph Hearst. Hiän joutui kidnappauksen uhriksi, mutta pian tämän jälkeen hiän teki pankkiryöstön ja joutui vankilaan), Genene Jones (infanticide nurse), Karla Homolka (Canadian serial killer), Diane Downs (infanticide), Aileen Wuornos (serial killer), Griselda Blanco (drug lady), Lizzie Borden (kirvesmurhaaja), Bonnie Parker (bank robber), Anne Bonny (pirate), Mary Bell (pedocide), Delphine LaLaurie (serial slavekiller), Patricia Krenwinkel (Manson family member), Leslie van Houten (Manson family member), Darlie Routier (infanticide), Susan Smith (infanticide), Susan Atkins (Manson family member), Ching Shih (pirate), Anna Sorokin Delvey (con woman), Amelia Dyer (serial killer), Assata Shakur (black terrorist), Belle Gunness (serial killer), Gypsy Rose Blanchard (matricide), Pamela Smart (mariticide), Ruth Ellis (nightclub hostess, last woman hanged in UK), Phoolan Devi (bandit), Ma Barker (matriarch), Jennifer Pan (parenticide), Virginia Hill (gangster), Karla Faye Tucker (burglar, first woman injected in US), Leonarda Cianciully (serial murderer, soapmaker), Mary Read, Carill Ann Fugate (murder spree), Grace Marks (maid), Belle Starr (outlaw, friend of Lucky Luke), Zerelda Mimms (Mrs. Jesse James), Jane Toppan (serial killer), Sara Jane Moore (wannabe assassin of Gerald Ford), Martha Beck (serial killer), Doris Payne (jewel thief), Mary Brunner (Manson family member), Barbara Graham (executed by gas), Grace O'Malley (pirate), Sada Abe (jealous geisha. When they asked why she had killed Ishida, “Immediately she became excited and her eyes sparkled in a strange way: ‘I loved him so much, I wanted him all to myself. But since we were not husband and wife, as long as he lived he could be embraced by other women. I knew that if I killed him no other woman could ever touch him again, so I killed him…..’ ), Samantha Lewthwaite (white somali terrorist), Theresa Knorr (murderess), Lynette Fromme (Manson family, wannabe assassin of Gerald Ford), The Freeway Phantom (serial killer), Carol M. Bundy (serial killer), Fanny Kaplan (bolshevik revolutionary), Marguerite Alibert (Ed VII courtesan), Jean Harris (author), Linda Hazzard (physician, serial killer), Mary Jane Kelly (1st victim of Jack the Ripper), Kim Hyon-hui (North-Korean spy), Vera Renczi (serial killer), Clare Bronfman (filthy rich criminal), Kirsten Gilbert (serial killer nurse), Gerda Steinhoff (Lagerwächterin), Linda Carty (baby robber), Estella Marie Thompson (black prostitute, blowjobbed Hugh Grant), Elizabeth Becker (Lagerwächterin), Juana Barraza (asesina en serie), Olivera Circovic (baseball player, writer, jewel thief), Olga Hepnarova (mental serial killer), Sabina Eriksson (knäpp tvilling), Minnie Dean (serial killer), Madame de Brinvilliers (aristocrat parri- and fratricide), Martha Rendell (familicide, last woman hanged in Western Australia), Violet Gibson (wannabe assassin of Mussolini), Idoia López Riaño (terrorist), Styllou Christofi (murdered her daughter in law), Mary Eastley (convicted of witchcraft), Wanda Klaff (Lagerwächterin), Giulia Tofana (avvelenatrice), Tisiphone (1/3 raivottaresta), Jean Lee (murderer for money), Brigitte Mohnhaupt (RAF terrorist), Marcia (mistress of Commodus), Beate Zschäpe (far-right terrorist), Evelyn Frechette (singer, Dillingerin heila), Francoise Dior (naziaktivisti), Linda Mulhall (nirhasi äidin poikaystävän saxilla), Brigit Hogefeld (RAF terrorist), Martha Corey (Salem witchhunt victim), Marie Lafarge (arsenikkimurha), Debra Lafave (teacher, gave blow job to student), Enriqueta Marti (asasina en serie), Alse Young (witch hanging victim), Elizabeth Michael (actress, involuntary manslaughter: nasty boyfriend hit his head and died while beating her), Susannah Martin (witchcraft), Maria Mandl (Gefängnisoffizerin), Mary Frith (pickpocket and fence), Hanadi Jaradat (suicide bomber), Marie-Josephte Carrivau (mariticide), Gudrun Ensslin (RAF founder), Anna Anderson (vale-Anastasia), Ans van Dijk (jutku nazikollaboraattori), Elizabeth Holmes (bisneshuijari), Ghislaine Maxwell (Epsteinin haahka), Julianna Farrait (drugs), Yolanda Saldivar (embezzler, killer), Jodi Arias (convicted killer Jodi Ann Arias was born on July 9, 1980, in Salinas, California. In the summer of 2008, Arias made national headlines when she was charged with murdering her ex-boyfriend Travis Alexander, a 30-year-old member of the Church of Jesus Christ of Latter Day Saints who was working as a motivational speaker and insurance salesman. Aargh. Justifiable homicide.) Alyssa Bustamante (kid murder), Mary Kay Letourneau (kid abuser), Mirtha Young (drugs), Catherine Nevin (mariticide), Pilar Prades (maid), Irmgard Möller (terrorist), Christine Schürrer (krimi), Reem Riyashi (suicide bomber), Amy Fisher (jealous), Wafa Idris (suicide bomber), Jeanne de Clisson (ex-noblewoman), Christine Papin (maid murderer), Sally McNeil (body builder), Mariette Bosch (murderer), Sandra Ávila Beltrán (drugs), Alice Schwarzer (journalist), Andrea Yates (litter murderer), Mimi Wong (bar hostess), Pauline Nyiramasuhuko (criminal politician), Josefa Segovia (murderer), Martha Needle (serial killer), Antonina Makarova (war criminal), Mary Surratt (criminal businessperson), Dorothea Binz (officer), Leona Helmsley (tax evasion), Angela Rayola (reality tv personality), Léa Papin (maid murderer), Ursula Erikssson (kriminell mördare), Maria Petrovna (spree killer), Aafia Siddiqui (criminal), Fatima Bernawi (palestinian militant), La Voisin (fortune teller), Deniz Seki (singer), Rasmea Odeh (Arab activist), Hildegard Lächert (nurse), Sajida al-Rishawi (suicide bomber), Hayat Boumeddiene (ISIS groupie, nähty viimexi Al Holissa), Herta Ehlert (Lagerwächterin), Elizabeth Stride (seriös mördare), Adelheid Schulz (krimi), Jenny-Wanda Barkman (Wächter), Shi Jianqiao (pardoned assassin. The assassination of Sun Chuanfang was ethically justified as an act of filial piety and turned into a political symbol of the legitimate vengeance against the Japanese invaders.), Rosemary West (serial killer), Juana Bormann (Lagerwächterin), Kathy Boudin (criminal), Kate Webster (assassin), Teresa Lewis (murderer), Hermine Braunsteiner (Lagerwächterin), Flor Contemplacion (assassina), Constance Kent (fratricide), Tamara Samsonova (serial killer), Herta Bothe (Lagerwächterin), Maria Gruber (Mörderin), Irene Leidolf (möderin), Waltraud Wagner (Mörderin), Elaine Campione (criminelle), Greta Bösel (Pflegerin), Marie Manning (Mörderin), Darya Nikolayevna Saltykova (sadist), Nora Parham (executed), Maria Barbella (assassina), Linda Wenzel (ISIS activist), Anna Marie Hahn (Mörderin), Suzane von Richthofen (parenticide), Charlotte Mulhall (murderer), Khioniya Guseva (kriminal), Daisy de Melker (serial killer nurse), Stephanija Meyer (Mörderin), Sinedu Tadesse (murderer), Ayat al-Akhras (suicide bomber), Akosita Lavulavu (minister of infrastructure and tourism), Sabrina de Sousa (criminal diplomat), Sally Basset (poisoner), Emma Zimmer (Aufseher), Mary Clement (serial killer), Irina Gaidamachuk (serial killer), Dagmar Overbye (serialmorder), Gesche Gottfried (Mörderin), Frances Knorr (serial killer), Beate Schmidt (Serienmörderin), Elizabeth Clarke (accused victim of witchcraft), Kim Sun-ja (serial killer), Olga Konstantinovana Briscorn (serial killer), Roxana Baldetti (politico), Rizana Nafeek (house maid), Margaret Scott (accused of witchcraft), Jacqueline Sauvage (meurtrier), Veronique Courjault (tueur en série), Barbara Erni (thief), Hilde Lesewitz (Schutzstaffel Wächterin), Thenmoli Rajaratnam (suicide bomber), etc. etc..
ellauri213.html on line 436: Sinedu Tadesse September 25, 1975 – May 28, 1995) was a junior at Harvard College who stabbed her roommate, Trang Phuong Ho, to death, then committed suicide. The incident may have resulted in a variety of changes to the administration of living conditions at Harvard. Tadesse is buried at the Ethiopian Orthodox Cemetery, Addis Ababa, Ethiopia. When Tadesse entered Harvard, she earned below-average grades, and was told that this would prevent her from attending top-ranked medical schools in the U.S. She made no friends, remaining distant even from relatives she had in the area. Tadesse sent a form letter to dozens of strangers that she picked from the phone book, describing her unhappiness and pleading with them to be her friend. One woman responded to the letter but became alarmed by the bizarre writings and recordings Tadesse sent her in return; she had no further contact with Tadesse. Another woman found the letter obnoxious and sent it to a friend who worked at Harvard to review.
ellauri213.html on line 438: After her freshman year, her roommate told her she was going to room with someone else. For her second and third years, Tadesse roomed with Trang Ho, a Vietnamese student who was well liked and doing well at Harvard, and Tadesse was obsessively fond of her. Tadesse was very needy in her demands for attention and became angry when Ho began to distance herself in their junior year. Tadesse apparently reacted with despair when Ho announced her decision to room with another group of girls their senior year, and the two women stopped speaking with each other after that. Tadesse purchased two knives and rope in advance. On May 28, 1995, Tadesse stabbed her roommate Ho 45 times with a hunting knife, killing her. Tadesse then hanged herself in the bathroom.
ellauri214.html on line 4:
ellauri214.html on line 62: J. K. Rowling has lived atop a pyramid of admiration for many years. However, after learning the truth about the author, many fans have become ashamed they ever supported Rowling. Rowling’s books are not inclusive and the minorities that are included are either used to satisfy a diversity quota or fulfill a stereotype. Come to think of it, ALL types in the Potter series are stereotypes. It all becomes too obvious when they have no superpowers.
ellauri214.html on line 64: In an obvious parallel with the Potter books, The Casual Vacancy is populated by a huge cast of mean, unsympathetic, small-minded folk. "This novel for adults is filled with a variety of people like Harry’s aunt and uncle, Petunia and Vernon Dursley: self-absorbed, small-minded, snobbish and judgmental folks, whose stories neither engage nor transport us.” — Michiko Kakutani, USA:n Toini Havu.
ellauri214.html on line 66: J. K. Rowling’s first adult novel The Casual Vacancy stirred a ruckus within Sikh Community after its publication leading to the involvement of SGPC and its head showing concern with the negative portrayal of Sikh characters in the novel. Rowling defends the novel by her theory of ‘corrosive racism’ after her ‘vast amount of research’ in Sikhism. The chapter explores diasporic Sikh identity through the character of Sukhvinder who though dyslexic is stifled by her mother and harassed by her classmate Fats through slanderous remarks targeting her Sikh identity. Though Sukhvinder resorts to self-torture after undergoing racism, she emerges victorious like a brave Sikh by her self-determination and emerges a heroine by helping everybody in Britain. The chapter applies Teun A. van Dijk’s racist discourse and post-colonial theories specifically Homi Bhabha’s hybridity of cultures, Jacques Rancière’s distribution of the sensible hinting at the redistribution of identities to make invisible diaspora visible and inaudible audible and Gayatri Spivak’s theory of the subaltern to prove that the Sikh diaspora remains in Charhdi Kala (higher state of mind) even in tough situations. The chapter concludes that though British Sikh diaspora undergoes racialism leading to identity crisis, Sikhs finally find resolution through Sikh identity model Sukhvinder who, treading the footsteps of Sikh heroes like Bhai Kanhayia, becomes a heroin addict by risking her life to save Robbie and by helping all in the novel.
ellauri214.html on line 70: In response to a Twitter post about how COVID-19 has been affecting people who menstruate, Rowling wrote, “‘People who menstruate.’ I’m sure there used to be a word for those people. Someone help me out. Wumben? Wimpund? Woomud?”. In this post, Rowling mocks trans people by insinuating that women who do not have a period are not real women. This tweet not only offended trans women who do not have periods, but also cisgender women born with medical conditions that prevent them from having a period, older women who have gone through menapause, and transgender men who still menstrate. Rowling has continued to bash transgender people by comparing hormone therapy to gay conversion therapy and tweeting articles arguing that transitioning is a medical experiment. Many have called Rowling out on her transphobia, and some have attempted to educate her on transgender issues and the difference between sex and gender. However, the author has not been receptive to these comments, and continues to deny that she is transphobic. Rowling’s transphobia has prompted Harry Potter actors Daniel Radcliff (Harry Potter), Emma Watson (Hermionie Granger), Rupert Grint (Ron Weasley), Bonnie Wright (Ginny Weasley), and Evanna Lynch (Luna Lovegood) to show their support for the transgender community. The only actor staunchly standing on her side is Tom Veladro (Voldemort). Oops, I shouldn't have said the name.
ellauri214.html on line 72: Though Rowling’s transphobia has been publicized the most, fans have also begun to notice prejudice in her writing. Very few people of color are featured in J. K. Rowling’s books, and those that are have few lines and no detailed story arcs. One of the people of color given more thought was Cho Chang, Harry Potter’s love interest who was first introduced in the third book, Harry Potter and the Prisoner of Azkaban. Rowling’s racism toward Asians and lack of knowledge of Asian culture is clearly evident from just the name Cho Chang, which is a mix of Korean and Chinese surnames. Korea and China have a longstanding history as political adversaries and each country has a distinct culture. While Rowling went to great efforts in creating a wonderfully immersive wizarding world, she gave no thought to what Cho’s ethnicity is. Cho was also sorted into Ravenclaw house, the school house for those of high intelligence, playing into a common stereotype of Asians. The only other Asian characters mentioned in the series are Indian twins Padma and Pavarti Patil. While Rowling appears to have given more thought to these characters, placing Padma in Ravenclaw and breaking the Asian stereotype by placing Pavarti in Gryffindor, she ultimately fails to adequately write Asian characters. While Pavarti, as a member of Harry Potter’s house, was given more depth than Cho or her sister, many South Asian fans were irritated by the girls’ dresses in the fourth movie, Harry Potter and the Goblet of Fire. The twins wore dull and unflattering traditional Indian attire, which many saw as a mockery of Indian culture. Cho herself wore an East Asian style dress in this movie which was a mix of different Asian styles. Rowling continued her habit of stereotyping Asians in the Fantastic Beast Movies, the first of which was released in 2016 and set in the 1920’s, several decades before the Harry Potter series. In this pre-series, the only Asian representation is displayed in the form of a woman who has been cursed to turn into a beast. Fans may remember the villain Voldemort’s pet snake, Nagini, who served him throughout the Harry Potter series. Fans were surprised to learn when watching The Crimes of Grindelwald, the second movie in the Fantastic Beasts series, that Nagini was not always a snake, but was actually a woman who had been cursed to turn into a snake. In the movie, Nagini, in human form, is caged and forced to perform in a circus. Though we do not know how Nagini came to meet Voldemort, we do know that she became his servant and the keeper of a wee snakelike portion of his soul. This is more than slightly problematic. Not only was Nagini the only Asian representation in the film, but she was also a half-human who was forced to serve an evil white man for a great part of her existence. Author Ellen Oh commented on Nagini’s inclusion in the film saying “I feel like this is the problem when white people want to diversify and don’t actually ask POC how to do so. They don’t make the connection between making Nagini an Asian woman who later on becomes the pet snake of an EEVIL whitish man.”
ellauri214.html on line 74: J.K. Rowling did not limit herself to being racist, she also included anti-semitic stereotypes in her books. Many readers have noticed how the descriptions of the goblins in the Harry Potter series bear striking resemblance to anti-semitic stereotypes. The goblins are hooked-nosed creatures who work at the wizarding bank Gringotts and are obsessed with gold and money.
ellauri214.html on line 78: Rowling tweeted,“It should never have been a problem with anyone but Ron Weasley was indeed transgender. Ron was born female but magically transitioned to male at age four. Gender transition is much easier in the magical world than it is in the muggle world – yet so similar. You lose your wiener ang get a twat, or the other way round, as the case may be.” Käy kuin Susannan kissanpojalle Harrylle, joka muuttui taianomaisesti Ginnyxi.
ellauri214.html on line 88: The Harry Potter series didn’t become a global phenomenon just because it was an exciting adventure, but because there was a real heart to it, characters who had both strengths and weaknesses, who struggled with their choices, much like Batman or Superman. Not so this time. Instead, “The Casual Vacancy” is a generally well-written book whose central theme is responsibility for those less fortunate, all the time imbued with ever-present British themes of class and notions of propriety.
ellauri214.html on line 90: The Casual Vacancy, which one bookseller breathlessly predicted would be the biggest novel of the year, isn’t dreadful. It’s just dull. … The small-town characters are all deluded in their own way with their own tales to tell. The problem is, not one of them is interesting or even particularly likeable. Collectively, it’s all too easy to turn the page on them. The fanbase may find it a bit sour, as it lacks the Harry Potter books’ warmth and charm; all the characters are fairly horrible or suicidally miserable, or dead.
ellauri214.html on line 104: I think JK Rowling did one thing exceptionally well: she had really interesting whimsical ideas based on everyday mundane life, and she can write these ideas out in a very visually exciting fashion. These little sparkles of crazy fun ideas can almost make you forget about the other glaring problems of the book. A lot of people (myself included) are attracted, or mesmerized by these whimsical sparkles of imagination. It's a fascinating magical world that's so imaginative and yet at the same time mirror our own.
ellauri214.html on line 106: But, Rowling's talent is skin deep. I absolutely do not agree that she did a great job in character and/or plot development. Her characters are pretty clichéd (Chosen one and his side kick), her setting is pretty narrow (British boarding school experiences), her plot is pretty predictable, and like all amateur writers, her plot line often meanders for no good reason at all. Her world building is imaginative, but lack planning. Simply put, most part of her world is a whim, it's not coherent, she didn't think it through. And the more you think about it, the bigger the problem it is. Oh and that one character everyone is singing praises about, as if it's the best written character of all time? Stereotypical Byronic hero. I read how people praise Snape being this greatest character of our generation, I couldn't help but wondering, you guys never read Wuthering Heights?! I've never attended an American high school but I'm pretty sure the Great Gatsby is on the required reading list.
ellauri214.html on line 126: I’m often shown eating nothing but fast food, but I never have a weight problem.
ellauri214.html on line 157: Despite growing up in an abusive family where nobody actually cares about me, I'm the most entitled person.
ellauri214.html on line 165: I can't be left alone. If the protagonist put me in a safe house, I will try to run away because I felt being ignored, and nobody gives a shit about me.
ellauri214.html on line 169: In fiction, a MacGuffin (sometimes McGuffin) is an object, device, or event that is necessary to the plot and the motivation of the characters, but insignificant, unimportant, or irrelevant in itself. The term was originated by Angus MacPhail for film, adopted by Alfred Hitchcock, and later extended to a similar device in other fiction.
ellauri214.html on line 175: In contrast to Hitchcock's view of a MacGuffin as an object around which the plot revolves but about which the audience does not care, George Lucas believes that "the audience should care about it almost as much as about the dueling heroes and villains on-screen (i.e. not at all)." Lucas describes R2-D2 as the MacGuffin of the original Star Wars film,and said that the Ark of the Covenant in the Bible, or the titular MacGuffin in Raiders of the Lost Ark, was an excellent example as opposed to the more obscure MacGuffin in Indiana Jones and the Temple of Doom and "feeble" MacGuffin in Indiana Jones and the Last Crusade.
ellauri214.html on line 197: Despite being independent and strong, I exist exclusive for the protagonist and it is my job to create predicaments for the protagonist.
ellauri214.html on line 206: Torstain 7.7. Hoblassa tuijottaa Erja Yläjärvi Pohjois-Savosta huolestuneena lukijaa kädet puuskassa: Ukraina kan förlora, hur ser sig Europa då i spegeln? Liksom Ryssland inte hörde till Europa. Mera tunga västerländska vapen för ukrainare, det är det som doktorn ordnat! Erja ser ut i bilden som en stridslysten liten kvinnlig apa. I samma nummer säger Ulf Johansson att det kanske är skäl att överge donbassregionen till ryssarna, och Ulla Klötzer (kvinnor för Fred Karlsson, Esbo) använder fula ord om Nato och dess planer för "full spectrum dominance". Det tog en vecka för de gamla silverryggarna att vakna upp och komma till Erjas undsättning.
ellauri214.html on line 214: Haha, Idris Ghidi, kurditaustainen. Idrixistä oli juuri puhetta. Kyllä gloobi on sitten pieni. Idris Ghidi moppaa lattioita Lispetin käytävässä. Kurdo Baxi, Bardo kuxi. Jaanalla on kurdimies ja sen puolikurdi poika on lääkäri. Siivooja oli ontuva mutakuono. Ontuva svartskalle oli siivooja. Hurrit perkeleet. Pekka ja pätkä neekereinä.
ellauri214.html on line 226: It supposedly originated from a conversation between the actress Lillie Langtry and the Bishop of Worcester. They were at a country house weekend party and on Sunday morning before church, they went for a stroll in the garden. On their walk, the bishop cut his finger on a rose thorn. Over lunch, Lillie enquired about his injury, asking: "How is your prick?" To which, the Bishop replied: "Throbbing", causing the butler to drop the potatoes.
ellauri214.html on line 263: P.P.S. Joku David Crane muikeilee rasvasta kiiltävä rapuliina kaulassa: aion syyttää Putinia sotarikoxesta. Tosin niihin on syyllistyneet vähävenäläisetkin mutta niitä ei lasketa. Olen kaatanut 1 presidentin, voin tehdä sen toistekin. Kyseessä oli Liberian presidentti, musta mies jolla oli joxeenkin pienet liperit. In 2017, Crane founded the Global Accountability Network to investigate international crimes in Syria, Yemen, Venezuela, and China. In 2022, his organization published a white paper titled "Russian War Crimes Against Ukraine: The Breach of International Humanitarian Law By The Russian Federation". Mustaa valkoisella. Heppu oli US Armyn rullissa 20v uran alussa. Ezellasta.
ellauri214.html on line 313: Tavattomasti pelkään, että EU antaa USA:n ja Britannian taluttaa itsensä suohon. Pitäisi aina käsittää, että EU:n ja Amerikan kapitalismien globaalit intressit ovat vastakkaiset.
ellauri214.html on line 330: Iivana Nyhtänköljä ei viizi kirjoittaa autobiografiaa, se koittaa vaan izellensä selvittää millainen lintu se on, ja kiteyttää: olen turha ihminen, ylimääräinen! Sen tehdessä kuolemaa oli taas maaliskuu, lunta putoili suurina höytyvinä. Se johtuu kai siitä että alhaalla maan tuntumassa on lämmintä, lumihiutaleet pudotessaan liimaantuvat toisiinsa. Juuri sellaista oli maaliskuussa 1978 Fainwood Circlellä.
ellauri214.html on line 547: Tokarczuk composed Flights as a “constellation novel”: a postmodern mosaic of meditations on all things in motion from travel-sized toiletries to the blood pumping through the human heart. National, emotional and temporal boundaries are crossed. Thoughts from a thoughtlessly flying semi-autobiographical narrator to Poland and the popular legend of Philippo Verheyen, the Flemish anatomist rumoured to have eaten his own amputated leg.
ellauri214.html on line 551: Tokarczuk felt this rejection of facts at first-hand when the Polish publication of her 2015 novel The Books of Jacob led to death threats from nationalists. Her 900-page “magnum opus” tells the true story of 18th-century Polish-Jewish religious leader Jakub Frank, who converted thousands of Orthodox Jews to a kind of Christianity that saw them condemned and persecuted for heresy.
ellauri214.html on line 558: BTW, I am already the second goy Polish nobelist to harp on Jews. That is a sure trick to catch an American left wing liberal audience.
ellauri214.html on line 560: Tokarczuk dismisses the global rise of nationalist movements as “the death throes of an outdated ideology. These old ideas of the state are completely disappearing,” she laughs. “People are migrating, travelling. Economics and the internet do not respect borders. We travel between different network providers! Welcome to EE!” She taps her phone with glee. (EE on joko Euroopan siipikarjayhdistys tai UK:n rahakkain operaattori.) “You could read Flights as an elegy for the old Europe.”
ellauri214.html on line 588: Olga Tokarczuk on yksi Puolan suosituimmista ihmisistä. Luultavasti kukaan ei ole kuullut siitä, että kirjailija voitti Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon. Vimma pyyhkäisi paitsi koko Puolan myös maailman. Toistaiseksi erittäin vaatimaton Olga Tokarczuk on tullut fanien ja toimittajien kysynnäksi. Vaikka hän antaa itse paljon haastatteluja, hän puhuu harvoin yksityiselämästään. Tiedetään, että hän on Grzegorz Zygadłan onnellinen vaimo, kuusi vuotta nuorempi kuin hän, koulutukseltaan filologi. Olga Tokarczukilla on myös poika Zbigniew, joka on hänen ensimmäisen avioliitonsa hedelmä kustantaja Roman Fingasin kanssa. Olgan kirjassa ovat naiset hyvixiä ja/tai fixuja, miehet pahixia ja/tai tyhmiä. Nii oikke, maxellaan vähän kalavelkoja. Näytetään niille pillua muttei anneta. Koko kirja on aikuisten satua. Eikä edes niin kovinkaan aikusten.
ellauri214.html on line 626: Rakastaisiko Steve Jobs minua vielä jos hänellä olisi syöpä turtleneck shirtin sisällä? Kysyi jumala. Jumala vei kaiken Steve Jobsilta ja itki samalla myötätunnosta. Mitä vittua? No jo on narsistinen tarina.
ellauri214.html on line 638: No niin, nyt marssitetaan esiin Stasi-tyyppejä. Ne on kuin jotain mafiosoja. Nobelisti ansaizee näin vapaan maailman kannuxia. Maxu tulee mitalina jälkijunassa.
ellauri214.html on line 664: Olgan oma uskonto on globalisaatio. Laila-koira Kinnunen lauloi Manzhurian kummut Saukin ja pikkuoravien sanoilla v 1962. Samana vuonna syntyi Olga Tokarzhuk opettajaperheeseen.
ellauri216.html on line 4:
ellauri216.html on line 76: Osaatko sattumoisin vanhaa kreikkaa? En. Sitten voinkin kusettaa sua mielin määrin, tai voit lukea tätä anglosaxittua läpyskää. Selviää sekin miten kv. terrorismi uhkaa globalisaatiota, ja kääntäen.
ellauri216.html on line 124: No oikeasti tää toimittaja on sekobolzi. Uuden valamon kellarissa oli vaan vihreät exit valot päällä. Huoneen valaistus oli niukka mutta riittävä. Ruoka oli hyvää ja sitä oli riittävästi.
ellauri216.html on line 183: Olisin mielelläni tiedustellut munkki Serafimilta tämän siviilisäädystä ja sexikokemuxista mutten kehannut. Ei mitään, odotetaan isä Panteleimonin autobiografiaa.
ellauri216.html on line 294: Jumalan pimeys on kiihkeä ja armoton romaani miehen elämästä ja hänen elämänsä naisista. Se kertoo menestyneestä toimittajasta, joka matkustaa luostariin tarkoituksenaan kirjoittaa kirja terrorismista ja globalisaatiosta. Työhön paneutuakseen hän tarvitsee rauhallisen ympäristön. Mutta hänen suunnitelmansa muuttuvat, kun yllättävät ja selittämättömät tapahtumat luostarissa tempaavat hänet mukaansa. Ne sysäävät hänet olemassaolon äärimmäiselle reunalle, ja hän joutuu kohtaamaan menneisyytensä ja nykyisyytensä ehkä ensimmäistä kertaa itseään väistämättä. Kirja kertoo myös rakkaudesta ja rakastamisen mahdottomuudesta, himosta ja rukouksesta, hurmiosta ja pelosta, väkivallasta ja hiljaisuudesta, lapsuudesta ja unista ja luopumisesta. Kaiken aikaa tehdään matkaa syvemmälle pimeyteen, jotta löytyisi armo, joka sinne kätkeytyy.
ellauri216.html on line 437: Jumalanäidin "Fedorovskaya"-kuvaketta kunnioitetaan erityisesti Venäjällä, myös siksi, että juuri tämän kuvan kautta annettiin Jumalan siunaus Mihail Fedorovich Romanovin hallitukselle, jonka valinta Venäjän valtaistuimelle tapahtui vuonna 1613. lopetti Venäjän valtiota pitkään piinaneen valtion kuohunta. Moskovasta Kostromaan lähetettiin Zemsky Soborin suurlähetystö, joka toi mukanaan Jumalanäidin "Vladimirskajan" ja Moskovan ihmetyöntekijöiden ikonin. Kostromassa papisto tapasi heidät "Fedorov"-kuvakkeen kanssa, ja he kaikki menivät Ipatievin luostariin, jossa nuori Mihail oli äitinsä, nunna Matryonan kanssa.
ellauri216.html on line 471: Arseniev Jacob, arkkipappi. Kuvaus Kostroman taivaaseenastumisen katedraalista. SPb., 1820, s. 17-18.
ellauri216.html on line 495: Jørgen Peter Müller (bedre kendt som I/J.P. Müller, 7. oktober 1866 i Asserballe på Als – 17. november 1938 i Aarhus) var en kendt dansk gymnastikpædagog og sundhedsapostel. Als on ristikoissa usein esiintyvä saari.
ellauri216.html on line 531: Tuttu tuoxu tulee vastaani. Narulla on äiskän ja serkkusiskojen työkaatiot. Äidin kala-aladoobi on taivaallista. Talven tullen käsityöt alkaa jälleen tympästä. Onkohan paikkani luostarissa, kun ei serkkusiskojenkaan pirog hozita? Luostarissa elämä on huoletonta, ruoka hyvää ja sitä on riittävästi.
ellauri216.html on line 610: Ikonin edessä toimitetaan vedenheittorukoushetkeä. Ikoni oli unohtunut varastoon. Ihme ja kumma! Sen kunniaksi Riza vihitään viitankantajaxi eli puolimunkixi. Viitan alla ei sovi vällykäärmeen enää teltata. Mielialamme on hurskas. Kävimme eilen yhteissaunassa, ja kaikkien pitkät tukat ovat tänään puhtaat ja pöyheät. Vale-Dimitrin kutrit ovat upeat. - Alas pikkuveikka! Paikka! Nyt ei käy! Leveähihaiset viitat päälle ja päähän klobukit. Ja eikun baanalle! Loppupäivä kuluu hengellisen ilon ja riemun vallassa. Uudet vaatteet tuntuu hienoilta. Näyttääköhän mun peppu tässä isolta? Mitäs sanot Dimitri? Noh! Maahan!
ellauri216.html on line 679: Voi vittu, joudun talouspuolelle. Vanha "kultaseni minulla on päänsärkyä" ei taaskaan vetele. Veljesten kokous on vallankumoushenkinen. Bolshevikit ovat äänessä. Nikander lyö Johannesta nenään saatuaan vain yhden tulitikkulaatikon. Vallankumouksellinen lehti Elävä Sana kertoo luostarielämästä sensaatiouutisia. Valamon munkit ovat juoppoja, konevizan isät nussivat pyhiinvaeltajia ja Petrogradin naisluostarissa pyllyt heiluvat. Saastainen mielikuvitus on lehtimiehellä! Tätäkö se on se svoboda?
ellauri216.html on line 703: Suureen skeemaan vihitään usein vanhoja munkkeja hieman ennen kuolemaa. Suuressa skeemassa munkki tai nunna saa vapautuksen oman kinobioottisen luostarinsa järjestyksestä ja mahdollisuuden toteuttaa omaa rukousjärjestystä ja elämänrytmiänsä, joskus myös esimerkiksi erakkona. Skeema on siis eräänlainen tavoitteellinen henkinen taso, joka ylittää ihmisen maalliset halut. Se on elämää jatkuvassa rukouksessa. Se on Herramme Jeesuksen Kristuksen kävelevänä ikonina olemista, niinkuin kuppiloiden mainoxet. Ihmiset, niin maallikot kuin munkitkin, hakevat skeemamunkilta hengellisiä neuvoja omaan uskonnolliseen ja hengelliseen elämäänsä.
ellauri216.html on line 807: Ensin muskoviitit eivät olleet huolia takinkääntänyttä Haritonia. No problem, käännän palttoon uudestaan! Muskoviitit tulevat Papinniemeen mitä ihanimmassa syysilmassa. Teemme maakumarruxia, oomme Kremlin edessä rähmällään kuin Urho Kekkonen. Palaamme kaikki noudattamaan vanhaa lukua.
ellauri216.html on line 877: The term nepsis comes from the New Testament's First Epistle of Peter (5:8, νήψατε, γρηγορήσατε. ὁ ἀντίδικος ὑμῶν διάβολος ὡς λέων ὠρυόμενος περιπατεῖ ζητῶν τινα καταπιεῖν — NIV: Be alert and of sober mind. Your enemy the devil prowls around like a roaring lion looking for someone to devour). There nepsis appears in a verb form, in the imperative mood, as an urgent command to vigilance and awakeness: "be alert and awake".
ellauri216.html on line 1046: Valaam Spaso-Preobrazhensky -luostari on Venäjän ortodoksisen kirkon stauropegiaalinen luostari, joka sijaitsee Valaamin saariston saarilla Venäjällä Karjalan tasavallassa on alueellisesti merkittävä Venäjän federaation kansojen kulttuuriperinnön kohde (Karjala) Alueellisesti merkittävä Venäjän federaation kansojen kulttuuriperinnön kohde. Reg. nro 101620695160005 ( EGROKN ). Nimikenumero 1010054029 (Wigid-tietokanta).
ellauri216.html on line 1067: 1700-luvun lopulla Valaamin luostarissa työskenteli kuvanveistäjä Kondraty Konyagin, joka tunnettiin töistään Ostashkovin kirkoissa ja Nilo-Stolobenskajan autiomaassa, jolle nykyaikaiset taidehistorioitsijat pitävät kunnioitettua munkin ihmekuvana (Stolobenskyn nolla).
ellauri216.html on line 1109: Tietoa luostarin hylätyistä rakennuksista maaliskuusta 1940 kesäkuuhun 1941 on vähän. Tiedetään, että luostarin rakennuksiin sijoitettiin lähes välittömästi venemiehien koulu ja porukka mökkipoikia. Historioitsija Sergei Miljaev. uskonnollisten selviytymistastoa koskevien painettujen julkaisujen kirjoittaja, lähetettiin Valaamaan valitsemaan käsikirjoituksia ja kirjoja luostarin kirjastosta ja arkistosta. Vuonna 1941 Miljajevin kaksisivuinen julkaisu luostarista ilmestyi Bezbozhnik-lehdessä otsikolla "Entinen obskurantismin ja vakoilun pesä". Miljajev esitti luostarin arkistosta löytämiensä asiakirjojen perusteella (tarkkojen lainausten kanssa) useita syytöksiä luostarin veljiä vastaan. Kaikki Miljajevin käyttämät asiakirjat on säilytetty. Vuonna 1940 Miljajev julkaisi artikkelin luostarista At the Turn -lehdessä, jossa kerrottiin seuraavaa:
ellauri216.html on line 1111: Vuoteen 1940 asti Valaam oli pieni "munkkien valtio" - obskurantisteja, riistäjiä, pankkiireja, sitten - vakoojia ja sabotöörejä, kansainvälisen vastavallankumouksen etuvartio Neuvostoliiton rajalla. Tämä "valtio" oli pinta-alaltaan 30 kertaa suurempi kuin Vatikaani - paavin "valtio", kaksi kertaa suurempi kuin Monacon ruhtinaskunta - osa feodaalista Eurooppaa. Ja Valaam munkkien tulot olivat neljä kertaa suuremmat kuin Monacon ruhtinaskunnan tulot. Miljajev totesi, että "koko Valaamin historia 1918-1940. on tarina Neuvostoliiton vastaisesta etuvartiosta Neuvostoliiton luoteisrajoilla". Miljajev valitsi luostarin kirjastosta 1 191 kirjaa vientiin Neuvostoliittoon, mutta ennen Suuren isänmaallisen sodan alkua kaikkia ei viety.
ellauri217.html on line 4:
ellauri217.html on line 39: Romantiikka on geenien ja meemien konfliktia. Se ilmenee selkeästi Kippari Kallen Oskarin näköisen egyptiläisen nobelistin abrahamistiuskontoja pilkkaavasta allegorisesta kirjasta. Kopulaatio ei ole romanttista ellei siihen ei liity sellaista konfliktia. Voi se olla muuten mukavaa muttei yhtä jännää.
ellauri217.html on line 67: The first four sections retell, in succession, the stories of: Adam (Adham أدهم) and how he was favoured by Gabalawi over the latter's other sons, including the eldest Satan/Iblis (Idris إدريس). In subsequent generations the heroes relive the lives of Moses (Gabal جبل) - Ai Moosesko? No ehkä vähän, Mooses oli urpo, mukiloi jonkun sivullisen kuoliaaxi, tapas Jehun pensaassa, senkin käärme koveni sauvaxi, se imitoi Hammurapia - mut on siinä mukana myös Jakobia eli Israelia, Jesus (Rifa'a رفاعة) and Muhammad (Qasim قاسم). The followers of each hero settle in different parts of the alley, symbolising Judaism, Christianity and Islam. The protagonist of the book's fifth section is Arafat (عرفة), who symbolises modern science and comes after the prophets, while all of their followers claim Arafat as one of their own.
ellauri217.html on line 71: It was this book that earned Naguib Mahfouz condemnation from Omar Abdel-Rahman in 1989, who called on him to repent or be killed, Abdel-Rahman also claimed that "If this sentence had been passed on Naguib Mahfouz when he wrote Children of the Alley, Salman Rushdie would have realized that he had to stay within bounds" after the Nobel Prize had revived interest in it. As a result, in 1994 – a day after the anniversary of the prize – Mahfouz was attacked and stabbed in the neck by two extremists outside his Cairo home. Mahfouz survived the attack, yet he suffered from its consequences until his death in 2006. Salman sai myös luovuttaa silmän silmästä loppupeleissä, yhtä tyhmänä kuin Daabas. Silmäpuoli Sinbad merenkulkija, Popeye the sailor man!
ellauri217.html on line 94: Harvahampaisen ebyktiläisen nobelistin jumalan nimi Gemalia ei näytä meinaavan midiä ainakaan länkkäreiden kirjoissa, se on Oskun keximä. Arabiaxi se voi tarkoittaa loistavaa tai kamelia. Milläinen on jumala? Pikku Lauri vastaa käskyn mukaan teeveen pyhäkoulussa: se on loistava. (En sentään että kameli.) Gemalia name Numerology:
ellauri217.html on line 105: “You are a stimulating person. You brighten social gatherings with your flesh and original ideas. Your conversation tends to be sprinkled with novelty and wit. You have a quick tongue and charisma. You are probably an excellent salesman. There is a lot of nervous energy within you looking for an outlet. You love your freedom and you see this life as an ongoing adventure. You are upbeat and optimistic.”
ellauri217.html on line 120: Gematria tai gimatria (hepr. גימטריה < m.kreik. γεωμετρία, geōmetria) tarkoittaa heprealaista numerologiaa tai lukumystiikkaa. Tämä perustuu siihen, että Kreikassa ja hepreassa lukuja ilmaistiin kirjaimilla. Gematriasta voidaan erottaa kaksi eri suuntausta, mystinen ja yleinen. Sana juontaa kreikan geometriaa tarkoittavasta sanasta. Vaikka heprealainen gematria on nykyisin tunnetuinta, kreikkalaiselle aakkoselle tarkoitettu gematria eli isopsefia on sitä useita vuosisatoja vanhempaa. Jakob Böhmen käyttämän symbolin keskellä on kolmio, jossa tetragrammatonin heprealaisista kirjaimista (JHWH) muodostettu tetraktys.
ellauri217.html on line 141: Muhammedin jäähyväissaarnasta on esitetty täysin uutta muistitietoa jopa 2000-luvulla. Suomessa Jaakob Hämeen-Anttila on muistavinaan, että Koraani sisältää melko täydellisesti Muhammedin saamat ilmoitukset niin, että unohtumaan on päässyt korkeintaan yksittäisiä sanoja kuten sieltä täältä "ei". Siihen pieneen pyylevään kaveriin ei ole luottamista pitemmälle kun sen jaxaa heittää.
ellauri217.html on line 148: Ibn Iisakin tarinassa isoisä rinnastuu Vanhan Testamentin Abrahamiin ja isä Iisakiin. (Olikohan Aabrahaminkaan isyys ihan varmistettu? Mitä Saara nauroi?) Mekasta tulee näin vastaavasti uusi Jerusalem ja Kaabasta uusi Temppeli. Muhammed on tällöin vertauskuvallisesti Iisakin poika eli Vanhan Testamentin Jaakob eli Israel. Tälle Jumala lupasi unessa perintöosaksi maan, jolla hän lepäsi. Aamun valjettua Jaakob otti päänalusenaan olleen kiven, pystytti sen patsaaksi ja antoi paikalle nimen Bethel eli Jumalan talo.
ellauri217.html on line 150: Arabivaltio nojasi Jumalan kanssa tehtyyn uuteen sopimukseen. Vastineeksi kuuliaisuudesta Jumala antoi Jaakobin jälkeläisille oikeuden luvattuun maahan. Paikka, jonne Jaakob oli pystyttänyt patsaansa, oli Jerusalemin Temppelivuori. Kalifi al-Malik antoi rakennuttaa sinne valtakuntansa keskuspyhäköksi Kalliomoskeijan. Pyhäkön keskellä on pylväiden ympäröimänä paljas kallio, maailman peruskivi. Sen päällä nukkuessaan Jaakob näki taivaaseen johtavat portaat, joita pitkin enkelit kulkivat. Tältä kiveltä myös Muhammed nousi taivaaseen jo Jaakobin käyttämiä tikapuita pitkin. Tällä tavoin hän ylitti copycattina Jaakobin suorituksen. Alef gimel daleth, kissa kävelee, tikapuita pitkin taivaaseen. Tarinassa Muhammed on uusi Jaakob, joten Jaakobin siunaus yhdistyy myös Muhammediin, jolle Jumala näin antoi luvatun maan ja koko maanpiirin hallittavaksi siunaukseksi kaikille kansoille. Tästä sopimusrikkomuxesta kärhämöivät GT-sählämit ja filistealaiset tänäkin päivänä, ja Rifaan porukat pyörii jaloissa joukon jatkona.
ellauri217.html on line 202: Jaakob Hämeen-Anttilan mukaan islamilaiset lähteet ovat kuin "talo ilman perustaa", mutta koska muutakaan ei ole tarjolla, niihin on luotettava. Muussa tapauksessa humanististen tieteiden saamat tulokset jäisivät huomattavan vähiin. Se olisi hyvin kiusallista.
ellauri217.html on line 260: Älkää spoilatko, tää on hieno päivä ärjyi Saddam. Jumala on kuollut, se lainas Nietzscheä. Arafat kävi seuraavaxi nirhaamassa sen jumalan puolesta. Onko Yasser ehkä kopsannut Nobelin kexinnön: dynamiittipötkön? Nitroglyseriini tunnettiin, Alfred kexi tehdä siitä turvallista savella. Arafat put a spotted dick on his head and went to see the Trustee. Trusteen nimi oli Katri-Helena. Kirjamies ja lavatähti kohtaavat. Mikä sai sinut pettämään kansan asian? No salamiakki! Ei kyllä se paukkupullo oli ydinpommi mieluummin, kun ottaa huomioon tän bühleinin ajoituxen.
ellauri217.html on line 262: Trustee Kadri-Helena onkin varmaan se ketku jutku Ben Gurion tms joka sai atomipommin teko-ohjeen heimoveljiltä jenkeistä. Israel's first Prime Minister David Ben-Gurion was "nearly obsessed" with obtaining nuclear weapons to prevent the Holocaust from reoccurring. He stated, "What Einstein, Oppenheimer, and Teller, the three of them are Jews, made for the United States, could also be done by scientists in Israel, for their own people". Deborah Brand 3 Aug 2022 0 2:04 Israeli Prime Minister Yair Lapid said this week Israel has "other capabilities" against threats from Iran, in a rare allusion to the country's widely reported nuclear stockpile.
ellauri217.html on line 270: Keljut oikeistopaskiaiset aina luulevat että toiset pelaa jotain pelejä koska ne ize aina tekee niin. Hoblan oikeistokukkahattutädit raportoivat tänään ainakin 3 oikeiston väärinkäytöstä, päivästä päivään jatkuvan Sanna Marinin vainon lisäxi: sähkön omsin poisto myös suurkuluttajilta, hoitovajeen poisto poistamalla hoitotakuut vanhoilta, ja amerikkalaisia natotukikohtia Suomeen kiireellä. Voi vittu, paras parannus olisi tehdä koko oikeistosta energiajakeita. Kexustan ja kokoomuxen poliitikot erityisesti on olleet kautta aikojen tuiki paskapäitä ensimmäisistä viimeisiin. Lika, kako ja kepu. Persut on niin rupusakkia ettei niitä viizi edes mainita. Saati hurreja, samlagspartiets lönnmedborgare.
ellauri217.html on line 292: Der faule Heinz der die ebenso faule Trine heiratete ist eins der langweiligsten Märchen Grimms. Die Heinzelmännchen waren der Sage nach Kölner Hausgeister. Sie verrichteten nachts, wenn die Bürger schliefen, deren Arbeit. Nachdem sie dabei jedoch einmal beobachtet wurden, verschwanden sie für immer. Neben ihrer geringen Größe zeigen auch typische Attribute, wie die Zipfelmütze und ihr Fleiß, dass die Heinzelmännchen zur Gruppe der Kobolde, Wichtel und Zwerge gehören.
ellauri217.html on line 317: Suurin piirtein kaikki somessa ja meediassa mesoavat mun jälkeen syntyneet on ellottavia ululoivia bonoboja ja babiaaneja. Niiden päät on täynnä vääristyneitä länsikapitalistisia mielikuvia. Ei niistä saa enää kalua millään ilveellä. Mun puolesta ne vois kaikki jauhaa jyvixi ja syöttää myllärin kanoille. Pojat joit ei saatu hyvix on nyt jauhettuna jyvix. Niitä nokkivat nyt somat myllärimme kanat omat.
ellauri217.html on line 413: M/S Finlandia on suomalaisen Eckerö Linen matkustaja-autolautta, jonka varustamo osti vuonna 2012 italialaiselta Moby SpA:lta korvatakseen sillä Helsinki–Tallinna-reitillä liikennöivän M/S Nordlandian. Finlandian alkuperäinen nimi oli M/S Moby Duck.
ellauri217.html on line 601: Saapui viimeisen kerran Pietariin ja myytiin napolilaiselle Moby SpA-yhtiölle.
ellauri217.html on line 604: Sai uudeksi nimekseen Moby Dada.
ellauri217.html on line 630: 70-luvulla ei ollut geenitestejä. Eikä geenimuokattuja kersoja. Fallesmannin Arvo ja merikapteeni ottavat ylleen hassut essut ja rupeavat leikkimään Marjojen plus pikku Moby Duckin kanssa hullunkurisia perheitä. All is well, loppupeleissä.
ellauri217.html on line 645: The Seven Laws of Noah include prohibitions against worshipping idols, cursing God, murder, adultery and sexual immorality, theft, eating bloody flesh, as well as the obligation to establish courts of justice. Noah had nothing against prepuces (but, surprisingly, male full frontal nudity).
ellauri217.html on line 647: According to modern Jewish law, non-Jews (gentiles) are not obligated to convert to Judaism, but they are required to observe the Seven Laws of Noah to be assured of a place in the World to Come (Olam Ha-Ba), the final reward of the righteous.The non-Jews that choose to follow the Seven Laws of Noah are regarded as "Righteous Gentiles" (Hebrew: חסידי אומות העולם, Chassiddei Umot ha-Olam: "Pious People of the World"). This is what Israel is enforcing on the West Bank and Gaza currently. The balls are in their court now, warn the Jews.
ellauri217.html on line 676:
- concerning robbery (gezel)
ellauri217.html on line 691: The Book of Jubilees, generally dated to the 1st century BCE, may include a substantially different list of six commandments at verses 7:20–25: (1) to observe righteousness; (2) to cover the shame of their flesh; (3) to bless their creator; (4) to honor their parents; (5) to love their neighbor; and (6) to guard against fornication, uncleanness, and all iniquity.
ellauri217.html on line 694: The 18th-century rabbi Jacob Emden hypothesized that Jesus, and Paul after him, intended to convert the gentiles to the Seven Laws of Noah while calling on the Jews to keep the full Law of Moses.
ellauri217.html on line 696: In the history of Christianity, the Apostolic Decree recorded in Acts 15 is commonly seen as a parallel to the Seven Laws of Noah. However, modern scholars dispute the connection between Acts 15 and the Noahide laws. The Apostolic Decree is still observed by the Eastern Orthodox Church and includes some food restrictions.
ellauri217.html on line 700: The Council of Jerusalem or Apostolic Council was held in Jerusalem around AD 50. It is unique among the ancient pre-ecumenical councils in that it is considered by Catholics and Eastern Orthodox to be a prototype and forerunner of the later ecumenical councils and a key part of Christian ethics. The council decided that Gentile converts to Christianity were not obligated to keep most of the fasts, and other specific rituals, including the rules concerning circumcision of males. The Council did, however, retain the prohibitions on eating blood, meat containing blood, and meat of animals that were strangled, and on fornication and idolatry, sometimes referred to as the Apostolic Decree or Jerusalem Quadrilateral. The purpose and origin of these four prohibitions is debated.
ellauri217.html on line 709: The primary issue which was addressed related to the requirement of circumcision, as the author of Acts relates, but other important matters arose as well, as the Apostolic Decree indicates. The dispute was between those, such as the followers of the "Pillars of the Church", led by Jeeves The Just (eikä melkein), who believed, following his interpretation of the Great Commission, that the church must observe the Torah, i.e. the rules of traditional Judaism, and Paul the Apostle, who believed there was no such necessity. The main concern for the Apostle Paul, which he subsequently expressed in greater detail with his letters directed to the early Christian communities in Asia Minor, was the inclusion of Gentiles into God´s newest Covenant, sending the message that faith in Christ is sufficient for salvation. (See also Supersessionism, New Covenant, Antinomianism, Hellenistic Judaism, and Paul the Apostle and Judaism).
ellauri217.html on line 723: In conclusion, therefore, it appears that the least unsatisfactory solution of the complicated textual and exegetical problems of the Apostolic Decree is to regard the fourfold decree as original (foods offered to idols, strangled meat, eating blood, and unchastity—whether ritual or moral), and to explain the two forms of the threefold decree in some such way as those suggested above. An extensive literature exists on the text and exegesis of the Apostolic Decree. According to Jacques Dupont, "Present day scholarship is practically unanimous in considering the 'Eastern' text of the decree as the only authentic text (in four items) and in interpreting its prescriptions in a sense not ethical but ritual (whatever that means)".
ellauri217.html on line 725: The main outcome of Jeeves´s "Apostolic Decree" was that the requirement of circumcision for males was not obligatory for Gentile converts, possibly in order to make it easier for them to join the movement. However, the Council did retain the prohibitions against Gentile converts eating meat containing blood, or meat of animals not properly slain. It also retained the prohibitions against "fornication" (to be detailed later) and "idol worship". The Decree may have been a major act of differentiation of the Church from its Jewish roots. Idol worship has since gone way out of bounds among the gentiles with the Idols contest and suchlike.
ellauri217.html on line 734: Paul, on the other hand, not only did not object to the observance of the Mosaic Law, as long as it did not interfere with the liberty of the Gentiles, but he conformed to its prescriptions when occasion required (1Corinthians 9:20). Thus he shortly after circumcised Timothy (Acts 16:1–3), and he was in fact in the very act of observing that Mosaic ritual with Tim when he was arrested at Jerusalem (Acts 21:26 sqq.) Or so he said.
ellauri217.html on line 736: According to the 19th-century Roman Catholic Bishop Karl Josef von Hefele, the Apostolic Decree of the Jerusalem Council "has been obsolete for centuries in the West", though it is still recognized and observed by the Eastern Orthodox Church. Hypersensationalists, such as the 20th century Anglican E. W. Bullinger, would be another example of a group that believes the decree (and everything before Acts 28) no longer applies.
ellauri219.html on line 4:
ellauri219.html on line 76: - Bob Dylan (singer/songwriter)
ellauri219.html on line 82: - Sir Robert Peel (19th century British Prime Minister)
ellauri219.html on line 99: (34A) James Joyce (Irish poet and novelist) – barely visible below Bob Dylan
ellauri219.html on line 135: - Albert Einstein (physicist) – largely obscured
ellauri219.html on line 141: - Bobby Breen (singer)
ellauri219.html on line 192: Lenny Bruce revolutionized comedy in the 50s and 60s, ushering in a personalized style that influenced many later comedians. By the time he appeared on the Sgt. Pepper’s cover, he had been arrested for obscenity, further making him a countercultural hero not only for The Beatles, but also the Beatniks and Bob Dylan (No.15). He died of a drug overdose in August 1966.
ellauri219.html on line 194: Leonard Alfred Schneider (October 13, 1925 – August 3, 1966), known professionally as Lenny Bruce, was an American stand-up comedian, social critic, and satirist. Samanikäinen kuin Tony Curtis, ja samanlainen vale-anglosaxi, Levantin kuomuneniä kumpikin. He was renowned for his open, free-wheeling, and critical style of comedy which contained satire, politics, religion, sex, and vulgarity. His 1964 conviction in an obscenity trial was followed by a posthumous pardon in 2003. Saat anteexi, mutta älä enää koskaan niin tee.
ellauri219.html on line 202: On October 4, 1961, Bruce was arrested for obscenity at the Jazz Workshop in San Francisco, where he had used the word "cocksucker", and "he probably can't come". Although the jury acquitted him, other law enforcement agencies began monitoring his appearances, resulting in frequent arrests under obscenity charges.
ellauri219.html on line 209: An all-male panel presided over his widely publicized six-month trial, Bruce and Howard Solomon were found guilty of obscenity on November 4, 1964. The conviction was announced despite positive testimony and petitions of support from—among other obscene artists, writers and educators — Woody Allen, Bob Dylan, Jules Feiffer, Allen Ginsberg, Norman Mailer, William Styron, and James Baldwin, and Manhattan journalist and television personality Dorothy Kilgallen and sociologist Herbert Gans. Bruce was sentenced on December 21, 1964, to four months in dryhouse (suivahuone); he was set free on bail during the appeals process and died before the appeal was decided, just like Master Eckehart.
ellauri219.html on line 211: Bruce paved the way for kitchen counter culture-era comedians. His trial for obscenity was a landmark of freedom of speech in the United States. Vittu mikä vapaan puheen edustaja, helvetti. In 2017, Rolling Stone magazine ranked him third (behind Richard Pryor and George Carlin) on its list of the 50 best stand-up comics of all time. "Olen offensiivinen", kalansilmä narsisti. Virnuilee koko ajan omille vizeilleen. Good riddance of bad rubbish.
ellauri219.html on line 262: 15: Bob Dylan
ellauri219.html on line 265: Dylan and The Beatles influenced each other throughout the 60s, each spurring the other on to making music that pushed boundaries and reshaped what was thought possible of the simple “pop song.” It was Dylan who convinced John Lennon (No.62) to write more personal songs in the shape of “Help!,” while The Beatles showed Bob what could be achieved with a full band behind him, helping the latter “go electric” in 1965. It was with George Harrison (No.65), however, that Dylan struck up the longest-lasting friendship; the two played together often in the years that followed, forming The Traveling Wilburys and guesting on each other’s projects.
ellauri219.html on line 272: 17: Sir Robert Peel
ellauri219.html on line 275: A founder of the modern Conservative Party, Sir Robert Peel served as the UK’s Prime Minister on two separate occasions, 1834-35 and 1841-46. While he served as the UK’s Home Secretary, Peel also helped form the modern police force – and his name is still evoked today, with the terms “bobbies” and “peelers” referring to policemen in England and Ireland, respectively.
ellauri219.html on line 280: Published in 1954, Aldous Huxley’s work, The Doors Of Perception, was required reading for the countercultural elite in the 60s. Detailing the author’s own experience of taking mescaline, it chimed with the consciousness-expanding ethos of the decade, and even gave The Doors their name. He was nominated for the Nobel Prize for Literature in seven different years and died on November 22, 1963, the same day that both With The Beatles was released and President John F Kennedy was assassinated. Aldousin veli oli Sir Julian Sorell Huxley (22. kesäkuuta 1887 - 14. helmikuuta 1975) oli brittiläinen biologi, joka kannusti pelagiolaista Teilhard de Chardinia. Huxleyt oli kaiken kaikkiaan hyvin suspekteja.
ellauri219.html on line 300: Striking and versatile, Tony Curtis was a Hollywood idol who made a dizzying amount of movies (over 100) between 1949 and 2008. He will always be remembered for his role alongside Jack Lemmon and Marilyn Monroe (No.25) in the 1959 cross-dressing caper Some Like It Hot, but another stand-out remains his performance alongside Burt Lancaster as fast-talking press agent Sidney Falco in the 1957 film noir The Sweet Smell Of Success. Tässä jää nyt mainizematta Veijareita ja pyhimyksiä (The Persuaders!), ITC Entertainmentin 1970–1971 tuottama televisiosarja. Sen pääosissa esiintyivät Tony Curtis (Danny Wilde) ja Roger Moore (lordi Brett Sinclair; koko nimi Brett Rupert George Robert Andrew Sinclair, Marnockin 15. jaarli). Sitä tehtiin 24 jaksoa. Tony ja Roger eivät voineet sietää toisiaan. Läskiintynyt Tony kuoli kasarina sydämen pysähdyxeen. Rooger aateloitiin, vaikkei käynyt loppuun edes teatterikoulua. “But because of the war there were 16 girls in every class to four boys so while I didn’t learn that much about acting, I learned a hell of a lot about sex.”
ellauri219.html on line 301: Once the job was done, said Sir
ellauri219.html on line 324: From Bob Dylan (No.15) to David Bowie, Tom Waits to Steely Dan, Beat Generation author Burroughs has influenced many a songwriter over the decades. Less known is that, according to Burroughs himself, he witnessed Paul McCartney (No.64) working on “Eleanor Rigby.” As quoted in A Report From The Bunker, a collection of conversations with author Victor Bockris, Burroughs recalled McCartney putting him up in The Beatles’ flat on 34 Montagu Square: “I saw the song taking shape. Once again, not knowing much about music, I could see that he knew what he was doing.”
ellauri219.html on line 329: A student of Sir Yukteswar Girl (No.1), Sir Mahatavara Babaji is said to have revived the practice of Kriya Yoga meditation, which was then taken to the West by Paramahansa Yogananda (No.33). In the latter’s memoir, Autobiography Of A Yogi, Yogananda claims that Babaji still lives in the Himalayas, but will only reveal himself to the truly blessed.
ellauri219.html on line 354: Along with Edgar Allan Poe (No.8), HG Wells shaped the modern sci-fi story. After penning groundbreaking novels such as The Time Machine and War Of The Worlds in the late 1800s, he turned to writing more political works and also became a four-time nominee of the Nobel Prize In Literature.
ellauri219.html on line 404: A Hollywood heartthrob of the 30s, 40s, and 50s, Tyrone Power was known for starring as the titular hero in the swashbuckling adventure film The Mark Of Zorro, though he also played the role of outlaw cowboy Jesse James, and starred in musicals, romantic comedies, and war movies.
ellauri219.html on line 414: It’s probably fair to say that Dr. Livingstone was to geographic exploration what The Beatles were to sonic innovation: fearless, ever questing, and mapping out new territories for the world. The famous “Dr. Livingstone, I presume?” saying remains in common use today, and can be traced back to a meeting between Livingstone and explorer Henry Morton Stanley, who’d been sent on an expedition to find the former, who had been missing for six years. Livingstone was discovered in the town of Ujiji, in what is now known as Tanzania.
ellauri219.html on line 434: George Bernard Shaw was an Irish playwright who helped shape modern theatre. The first person to receive both a Nobel Prize (in 1925, for Literature) and an Oscar (in 1939, for Best Adapted Screenplay, for Pygmalion). His works continue to be staged in the 21st Century.
ellauri219.html on line 485: 66: Bobby Breen
ellauri219.html on line 488: Like Shirley Temple (Nos.58, 71, and 73), Bobby Breen was a child star of the 30s. After enlisting in the military and entertaining the troops during World War II he became a nightclub singer, and, in 1964, even made some recordings for Berry Gordy’s Motown label.
ellauri219.html on line 548: Originating from India, the hookah is a tobacco-smoking instrument designed so that the smoke is filtered through a water basin before being inhaled. Its inclusion on the Sgt Pepper album cover is a nod to both George Harrison’s (No.65) love of India and John Lennon’s (No.62) love of Lewis Carroll (No.52), whose Caterpillar in Alice’s Adventures In Wonderland smokes a hookah.
ellauri219.html on line 581: Two of his brothers died in childhood because they had contracted fatal illnesses from him. In 1928, the seven-year-old Rawls contracted diphtheria. His brother Bobby, younger by 20 months, visited him in his room and was fatally infected. The next winter, Rawls contracted pneumonia. Another younger brother, Tommy, caught the illness from him and died. Hahaa, sun vika John! Olet perisyntinen!
ellauri219.html on line 592: Following the surrender of Japan, Rawls became part of General MacArthur's occupying army and was promoted to sergeant. But he became disillusioned with the military when he saw the aftermath of the atomic blast in Hiroshima. Rawls then disobeyed an order to discipline a fellow soldier, "believing no punishment was justified," and was "demoted back to a private." Disenchanted, he left the military in January 1946.
ellauri219.html on line 597: In his autobiographical essay, “On My Religion,” Rawls explains why he abandoned his orthodox Christian beliefs in spite of the deeply religious temperament that informed his life and writings. In particular, he recounts how his personal experiences during the Second World War, and especially his awareness of the Holocaust, led him to question whether prayer was possible. “To interpret history as expressing God’s will, God’s will must accord with the most basic ideas of justice as we know them. For what else can the most basic justice be? Thus, I soon came to reject the idea of the supremacy of the divine will as [like the Holocaust] also hideous and evil.” Furthermore, by studying the history of the Inquisition Rawls came to “think of the denial of religious freedom and liberty of conscience as a very great evil,” such that “it makes the claims of the Popes to infallibility impossible to accept.” Finally, his reading of Jean Bodin’s thoughts about toleration led him to claim that religions should be “each reasonable, and accept the idea of public reason and its idea of the domain of the political.” Against this background, it is no wonder that Rawls considers the very concept of religious truth as authoritarian and intolerant, and the ensuing persecution of dissenters as the curse of Christianity.
ellauri219.html on line 635: Fassbinder continues to have group sex with his neurotics and obsessives and cannot understand why everyone falls for Michael. The group sessions get stranger—including an indoor cricket match. Michael dreams that all his sexual conquests simultaneously bombard him for attention, listing where they made love.
ellauri219.html on line 771: In the practice of meditation, a beginning may be made by fixing the attention upon some external object, such as a sacred image or picture, or a part of a book of devotion. In the second stage, one passes from the outer object to an inner pondering upon its lessons. The third stage is the inspiration, the heightening of the spiritual will, which results from this pondering. The fourth stage is the realization of one’s spiritual being, as enkindled by this meditation. An interior state of spiritual consciousness is reached, which is called “the cloud of things knowable”. Tietämättömyyden pilvi. (tyhjää) puhekuplassa.
ellauri219.html on line 773: Those who have died, entered the paradise between births, are in a condition resembling meditation without an external object. But in the fullness of time, the seeds of desire in them will spring up, and they will be born again into this world. Kuin Jörkan pornokirjassa, han hade blivit pigg igen. Vad bra.
ellauri219.html on line 781: For those of weak willy, there is this counsel: to be faithful in obedience, to give the wife, and thus to strengthen the willy to more perfect obedience. The willy is not ours, but Cod’s, and we come into it only through obedience. As we enter into the spirit of Cod, we are permitted to share the power of Cod. If we obey the Master promptly, loyally, sincerely, we shall enter by degrees into the Master’s wife and share the Master’s powerful willy.
ellauri219.html on line 796: No it is not because of Trump. People outside of America slagged off the US in the Clinton years, and the Nixon years, and the Eisenhower years. The negative perception was cemented in the 60s, and everything since has been confirmation bias. So what had happened? Two obviously invasive lost wars in Indochina and nasty machinations here and there, Middle East and South America in particular. Pretty obvious what the fuckheads were (and are) up to: world conquest for the cause of American capitalism, nothing less.
ellauri219.html on line 809: The soft power means that they aren’t necessarily going to hate you outright: Americans did not bomb Britain out of an Empire, they just took over their dominions, whatever they got up to in Vietnam or Iraq. But people know that you’re the obese gorilla, even if you constantly tell them that you are virtuous and noble. Which will make them all the more ready to pounce on you, when you inevitably fall short of your virtuous and noble rhetoric. That virtuous and noble rhetoric made the resentment inevitable.
ellauri219.html on line 815: You’re hearing it even now, in the tedious whataboutism from the Global South (the new enemy, now that Global North is practically ours) about Ukraine. People expect Putin’s Russia to elbow neighbours aside in pursuit of security. That’s what imperial Athens did to Melos. They don’t expect any better. But America? America said it was better. So what? Who in their right mind would believe them? They are a nation of used car salesmen. It still does, with its advocacy of human rights. That’s why the non-stop whataboutist refrain from them is that America is hypocritical. Which it is, to a fault.
ellauri219.html on line 828: I think a lot of the bias toward Americans also comes from our historical tendency to inflate the wonders of American life to oversized proportions out of sync with reality. Some of this comes from having been put down so frequently, a class-based psychological issue deep-rooted in American life, probably related to so many of us having come from poor immigrant families. We puff up the wonders of American life to compensate for having come from the bottom rungs of society in other countries. We’re not the only culture that does this.
ellauri219.html on line 877: Charles Robert Darwin, English naturalist (1809-1882).
ellauri219.html on line 909: Robert Frost, American poet (1874-1963)
ellauri219.html on line 962: While those who never had sex with animals or done drugs may criticize Kara’s, Jordan's and their dogs' lewd behaviors as if they were evil — and this, perhaps, according to Christian morality as they interpret it — anybody who has actually suffered from lewdness puts this to the lie and knows that such behavior is not a moral issue, but a chemical imbalance. Evidently the words of Jesus to “Judge not lest you be judged,” make little impression on such folk, who pretend to themselves that if their worst, most embarrassing moments were made into headlines in the papers, they would do just fine. Even if they themselves had nothing to be embarrassed about in all their life of adventures and misadventures, they ought to have compassion for those who struggle with greater problems than their own. “Let Judge Hicks who is without sin cast the first stone,” is another saying of Jesus that applies to those who would judge and condemn an easy target.
ellauri219.html on line 975: Underworld (also released as Paying the Penalty) is a 1927 American silent crime film directed by Josef von Sternberg and starring Clive Brook, Evelyn Brent and George Bankrupt. The film launched Sternberg's eight-year collaboration with Paramount Pictures, with whom he would produce his seven films with actress Marlene Dietrich. Journalist and screenwriter Ben Hecht won an Academy Award for Best Original Story. Time felt the film was realistic in some parts, but disliked the Hollywood cliché of turning an evil character's heart to gold at the end. Filmmaker and surrealist Luis Buñuel named Underworld as his all time favorite film. Critic Andrew Sarris cautions that Underworld does not qualify as "the first gangster film" as Sternberg "showed little interest in the purely gangsterish aspects of the genre" nor the "mechanics of mob power." Film critic Dave Kehr, on the other hand, writing for the Chicago Reader in 2014, rates Underworld as one of the great gangster films of the silent era. "The film established the fundamental elements of the gangster movie: a hoodlum hero; ominous, night-shrouded city streets; floozies; and a blazing finale in which the cops cut down the protagonist."
ellauri219.html on line 1012: Underworld is a novel, quite simply, about what was experienced in the United States in the second half of the 20th century. An era shaped by the advent and then cancellation of the Bretton Woods agreement. Nuclear proliferation. The withering away and relocation of American manufacturing, and the rise of global capitalism. Jazz. The Cuban missile crisis (through the voice, as DeLillo has it, of the smirking standup comedian Lenny Bruce). Civil tights. The CIA. Bombs on university campuses. Artists on New York rooftops, and around them, the old industrial framework of bygone city life, something aesthetic and exotic, either marvelled at or ignored, take your pick.
ellauri219.html on line 1018: Then there’s Moonman 157 and Klara Sax, a feminist ideal of Land Art. What do they have in common? Smudging useful things with paint. An artistic version of food fight. What do Jayne Mansfield’s breasts remind adolescent Eric of? The bumper bullets on a Cadillac. What does Dumb of Dumb and Dumber take for a cute lady's boobs? A semi trailer's fog lights. Meanwhile, Eric masturbates into a condom that reminds him of a missile (with his tiny wiener all loaded and cocked inside). Dad polishes his Buick, the son his dick. The clammy hand of coincidence.
ellauri220.html on line 4:
ellauri220.html on line 75: Löllön Matt-jaxot ovat joutavanpäiväistä pöpinää. Löllön ongelma on vähän sama kuin Foster Wallacen ja Pynchonin: kaikki hahmot ovat epäuskottavia tuulesta temmattuja pompittimia. Me tarvitsemme parhaat ihmiset asetyöhön, sanoo kimittävä Janet joka ei ole vieläkään hellittänyt pikkarien kuminauhasta. Janetin omatunto toimii kahteen suuntaan. Kylmän sodan aikaiset pommifobiat on lapsellisen kuuloisia nyt kun ilmastokatastrofi ja 7. sukupuutto on täydessä vauhdissa. Yhdyntä oli alakuloinen ja vähän outo. Teemmepä me salassa mitä tahansa, ne (sovjetit) tekevät jotain vielä pahempaa. Naivat vaikka yhtä aikaa pilluun sekä peräreikään pesäpallomailalla. Matt ja/tai sen aseveljet veti Namissa heroiinia. "Apina alistaa taivaan tahtoonsa", paskanmarjat, 2 mustakaapuhävittäjää särkee äänivallia inkkarien ikimuistoisilla mezästysmailla, ei sillä vielä kuuhun mennä Akulainen. Iiskotti! Äyk!
ellauri220.html on line 190: In "Murder Most Foul", a musical on Kennedy's assassination and its effect on American bar counter culture, Bob Dylan sings 'Zapruder's film I've seen 33 times maybe more'.
ellauri220.html on line 227: Mario Badalato Mario Badalato is the mobster who assures Nick Shay his father wasn't killed in a hit.
ellauri220.html on line 239: Sister Edgar Sister Edgar is the strict, germophobic nun who locates abandoned cars. At the end of the novel, Sister Edgar has a religious experience that makes her question her faith and life.
ellauri220.html on line 264: Cotter Martin Cotter Martin is the teenage boy who skips school to attend a baseball game and ends up stealing the Bobby Thomson home run ball.
ellauri220.html on line 280: Bobby Thomson Bobby Thomson is the Giants player who hit the home run that became known as the "Shot Heard Round the World."
ellauri220.html on line 304: - (Hong Kong and South China) A White man. Gwei or kwai (鬼) means 'ghost', which the color white is associated with in China; and the term lo (佬) refers to a regular guy (i.e. a fellow, a chap, or a bloke). Once a mark of xenophobia, the word was promoted by Maoists as insulting but is now in general, informal use.
ellauri220.html on line 421: Ja silti: OLEN VAHVASTI SITÄ MIELTÄ, ETTÄ JÄRJELLÄKIN VENÄJÄÄ VOI YMMÄRTÄÄ, ainakin osaksi – kunhan viitsii ottaa asioista selvää, lukea muutakin infoa ja kirjallisuutta kuin mitä suomalainen VALTAmedia on nykyisin täynnä. Jos ja kun haluamme selvitä ilmastokriisistä ja muista globaaleista ongelmista, meidän on joka tapauksessa tehtävä yhteistyötä Venäjän ja muiden pahismaiden kanssa.
ellauri220.html on line 449: Job's tears, scientific name Coix lacryma-jobi, also known as adlay or adlay millet, is a tall grain-bearing perennial tropical plant of the family Poaceae (grass family). It is native to Southeast Asia and introduced to Northern China and India in remote antiquity, and elsewhere cultivated in gardens as an annual. It has been naturalized in the southern United States and the New World tropics. In its native environment it is grown at higher elevation areas where rice and corn do not grow well. Job's tears are also commonly sold as Chinese pearl barley.
ellauri220.html on line 452: Two major events Adlai Stevenson number 2 dealt with during his time as UN ambassador were the Bay of Pigs Invasion of Cuba in April 1961 and the Cuban Missile Crisis in October 1962.
ellauri220.html on line 459: Ei helvetti suorasoittovideot on vielä pahempaa kuin vanha televisio. Makusteltiin eilen kahta epäilyttävää pizzapalaa: länsi-itävaltalainen sarja Bloody Wiener jonka sankari oli amerikaxi ääntävä muka puolibritti Max jossa KAIKKI wieniläiset sprechen Englisch Sigmund Freud-akzentilla (en jaxanut traileria loppuun asti, anglosaxipropagada alkoi eka repliikistä), ja sveiziläinen nazijahtisarja jossa eka skene oli sveizinsaxaxi ihan vaan että päästään exoottiseen tunnelmaan, mutt jatko oli perusjenkkikamaa: luihu sakemanni saa heti kysymättä turpaan diCaprion näköiseltä nazijahtimieheltä. Siitä lähin kaikki porukat on puleerattuja Buchenwaldin teinipoikia myöden yläsaxaa puhuvia toblerone kermaperseitä. Ja sitten alkoi tulla iänikuisia tv-trooppeja tuutin täydeltä. Saatanan elefantit lampaat päänsä päällä peruukkeina. Nyt riitti sanoi Tarzan, suljen tämän viidakon.
ellauri220.html on line 472: Many shows and movies don't bother getting a foreign language right when they portray them. The incidence of this increases along with the obscurity of the language. But first and foremost, if the intended audience won't be able to tell the difference anyway, why bother? A variation on this is that the foreigners speak English, but are identified as foreign by an accent or are parading universally known national images.
ellauri220.html on line 478: Sometimes, when a language is spoken by a non-native speaker, their speech patterns feature traits that show that the speaker is a foreigner. This may include the use of words from the speaker's native language, or errors in their syntax. See You No Take Candle (and its subtrope Tonto Talk) for cases where foreigners consistently talk with very poor grammar and lack of vocabulary. Supertrope to the more racial Asian Speekee Engrish and Tonto Talk, and like them sometimes Truth in Television, although also like them it can sometimes also be considered offensive or politically incorrect if used poorly. Compare Hulk Speak and Strange-Syntax Speaker. See also Gratuitous Foreign Language and As Long as It Sounds Foreign, wherein nobody's supposed to understand any of the words.
ellauri220.html on line 495: Zartog: I am Zartog, the rightful ruler of planet Malgor, and soon-to-be ruler of planet Earth, and I know a good weapon when I see one. Now tell me where your leader Ham is, or I will blast you all into oblivion! (perspective switches to the humans, who hear nothing but gibberish)
ellauri220.html on line 496: Dr. Bob: ...Anybody understand him?
ellauri220.html on line 510: — Robin Williams
ellauri220.html on line 544: Jännärigenressä on tosi selkeästi yxinkertaistettu apinan tarpeet Darwinin kolmeen leiböliin: EAT! FUCK! KILL! ilman mitään joutavia komplikaatioita. Moukkamaisuus on apinoiden enemmistön sanelema pohjanoteeraus kaikessa. Se on vain pahentunut Internetin takia, kun Google ym tekevät entistä parempia yhteenvetoja siitä mitä lerppahuulikansan enemmistö, nuo "tavan tallaajat" haluaa, ja sitähän ne saa. Huda hudaa. Esim Googlen navigaattorilla pääsee vaan eniten käytettyjä reittejä eniten haluttuihin kohteisiin. Jos muuta yrität, robotti ottaa käyttöön kovat otteet: "Hattunne sir!". Jo tämänkin takia globalisaatio, keskittyminen ja kasautuminen on täysin perseestä. Eise lisää valinnan vapautta vaan päinvastoin vähentää diversiteettiä. Vapaushan on sitä että saa mitä haluaa, ja enemmistö apinoista haluaa aina samaa: EAT! FUCK! KILL!
ellauri220.html on line 659: Tää de Lillo on hyvin vanhanaikainen kaveri, ja vanhahan se jo onkin, 86. Hän sanoo: "On yksi mielenkiintoinen juttu. Ukrainassa on nainen joka sanoo olevansa toinen Kristus (tai Krista, oikeammin). Hänen opetuslapsensa naulitsevat hänet ristiin, ja sitten hän nousee kuolleista. Hyvin varteenotettava ihminen. Viisitoistatuhatta opetuslasta. Voitko uskoa? Koulutettuja ihmisiä, aivan normaalin oloisia. En minä tiedä. Tällaista kommunismin jälkeen?" "Ehkä Tšernobylin jälkeen." "En minä tiedä”, hän sanoo.
ellauri221.html on line 4:
ellauri221.html on line 53: Jännärigenressä on tosi selkeästi yxinkertaistettu apinan tarpeet Darwinin kolmeen leiböliin: EAT! FUCK! KILL! ilman mitään joutavia komplikaatioita. Moukkamaisuus on apinoiden enemmistön sanelema pohjanoteeraus kaikessa. Se on vain pahentunut Internetin takia, kun Google ym tekevät entistä parempia yhteenvetoja siitä mitä lerppahuulikansan enemmistö, nuo "tavan tallaajat" haluaa, ja sitähän ne saa. Huda hudaa. Esim Googlen navigaattorilla pääsee vaan eniten käytettyjä reittejä eniten haluttuihin kohteisiin. Jos muuta yrität, robotti ottaa käyttöön kovat otteet: "Hattunne sir!". Jo tämänkin takia globalisaatio, keskittyminen ja kasautuminen on täysin perseestä. Eise lisää valinnan vapautta vaan päinvastoin vähentää diversiteettiä. Vapaushan on sitä että saa mitä haluaa, ja enemmistö apinoista haluaa aina samaa: EAT! FUCK! KILL!
ellauri221.html on line 77: At the far end, above the cold cuts table, laden with lobsters, pies, joints and delicacies in aspic, Romney’s unfinished full-length portrait of Mrs Fitzsherbet gazed provocatively across at Fragonard’s Jeu de Cartes, the broad conversation-piece which half-filled the opposite wall above the Adam fireplace.
ellauri221.html on line 97: Elle dépose le 13 décembre 1945 devant le Conseil municipal de Paris un projet pour la fermeture des maisons closes. Dans son discours, elle ne s’en prend pas tant aux prostituées qu’à la société, responsable selon elle, de la « débauche organisée et patentée » et à la mafia, qui bénéficie de la prostitution réglementée ; le propos permet aussi de rappeler que le milieu de la prostitution s'est compromis avec l’occupant pendant la guerre. Sa proposition est votée et le 20 décembre 1945, le préfet de police Charles Luizet décide de fermer sans préavis les maisons du département de la Seine dans les 3 mois (au plus tard le 15 mars 1946, date qu'a fixée le conseil municipal). Encouragée, Marthe Richard commence une campagne de presse pour le vote d'une loi généralisant ces mesures. Elle est soutenue par le Cartel d'action sociale et morale et le ministre de la Santé publique et de la Population, Robert Prigent.
ellauri221.html on line 302: Bond meets Goodhead again once Drax puts them under ´Moonraker 5´ to be incinerated by the lift-off. They escape and are able to pilot ´Moonraker 6´. After following Drax to his space station, Goodhead and Bond listen to Drax´s speech and leave. Jaws later captures them after the first globe is launched. Drax tells Bond about his plan about having perfect human beings on his earth, with no physical peculiarity or ugliness, but this is overheard by Jaws. He sees that because of his ugly steel teeth, he will be destroyed alongside his ugly girlfriend, Dolly, so turns on Drax and helps Bond and Goodhead to fight Drax´s men. After Bond goes to defeat Drax, Goodhead helps him, and Dolly and Jaws get off on the self-destructing space station, escaping on a pod of their own into Earth´s atmosphere. Bond and Goodhead go after the globe, nearly destroying its inhabitants, but not quite. Bugger it.
ellauri221.html on line 306: James Bond investigates the mid-air theft of a space shuttle, and discovers a plot to commit global genocide.
ellauri221.html on line 310: A space shuttle is stolen enroute to London and M sends James Bond out to apologize to the shuttle creator, billionaire Hugo Drax. While visiting Drax´s estate, several attempts are made on Bond´s life, making Drax the number one suspect. Bond also meets Dr. Holly Goodhead, a N.A.S.A. scientist, who is also a C.I.A. Agent investigating Drax. Their investigations lead Bond to discover a plot to murder the world´s population so that Drax can repopulate the planet in his image. The chase takes Bond all over the world, California, Brazil, the Amazon James, and, finally, to Drax´s huge space-city over the Earth. Drax, meanwhile, has hired a old friend of Bond to take care of any problems, the steel-toothed killer Jaws.
ellauri222.html on line 33: Prix Nobel de littérature
ellauri222.html on line 39: ...a man who was a towering intellectual (but short), a charismatic personality (but nasty) and Nobel Prize winner (anti communist) who searched in his writing for an answer (haha what did he find? EFK?) to the spiritual wilderness at the core of the human experience – but also (and above all) a petty man replete with human faults. Tää on tietysti Sale, jonka rusikointi jatkuu tässä Salen dickensiläistä pikareskiromaania lukiessa. Tämä albumi on jatkoa albumille 52, jossa Salea on jo alustavasti rökitetty.
ellauri222.html on line 78: As previous biographers have discovered, it’s difficult to write an endearing biography of Bellow. “Was I a man or was I a jerk?” Bellow inquired on his deathbed. The answer should be obvious.
ellauri222.html on line 92: LOS ANGELES—Born in Canada into an immigrant Jewish family in 1915, Nobel Prize-winning author Saul Bellow had a traditional Jewish upbringing, which included Torah study, Talmud, and Hebrew. Yet Rabbi David Wolpe observes that Bellow had an ambivalent relationship with Judaism.
ellauri222.html on line 98: Saul Bellow is the only American Jewish author to have won the Nobel Prize in Literature, and has also won three Pulitzer Prizes. In his new book, Greg Bellow, who holds a Ph.D. from the California Institute of Social Work and was a practicing psychotherapist for many years, divides his father’s life into “Young Saul” and “Old Saul.” He describes Young Saul as a sociable and funny man, full of questions. During the 1930s and ’40s, Saul was a Marxist and a “genuine believer” in radical philosophy. He believed that World War II was a war between communism and capitalism, and he was convinced that “come the Revolution there will be a flowering of society,” according to Greg’s book.
ellauri222.html on line 112: Greg, asked to speculate on how his father might view today’s social values as compared to those of the ’60s, which Sammler criticized so strongly, told JNS.org that Saul Bellow probably would not have changed his opinion since “ours is a society with shallow moral values.”
“We’re not done with genocide on the basis of race and ethnicity, and we live at a time when death can come out of the sky at any moment,” Greg said. "We fear nothing except that the sky might crash on us one day."
ellauri222.html on line 125: In his Op-Ed about the Zulu Tolstoy, Bellow made much of his academic training in anthropology. After leaving Northwestern, he did become a graduate student in anthropology at the University of Wisconsin. But he completed just one course before dropping out and returning to Chicago, where he married a woman, Anita Goshkin, who was studying for a master’s degree in social work, and began his career as a fiction writer and itinerant college teacher. His first job was at Pestalozzi-Froebel Teachers College, on South Michigan Avenue, in downtown Chicago.
ellauri222.html on line 129: He also worked for a time at the Encyclopædia Britannica, on the fifty-two-volume “Great Books of the Western World,” under the editorship of Mortimer J. Adler. Bellow was in charge of editing part of the “Syntopicon,” a two-volume digest of the Great Ideas composed by Adler. He had taken one of Adler’s courses at the University of Chicago and had concluded that it was “tomfoolery,” but he seems to have liked the job.
ellauri222.html on line 137: In the culture of little magazines, friendship is the last thing to prevent one writer from reviewing the work of another. As a novelist happy to have well-disposed reviewers, Bellow had an obvious stake in these friendships. But the friends had a stake in Bellow, too. As Mark Greif points out in his important new study of mid-century intellectual life, “The Age of the Crisis of Man,” Bellow came on the scene at a time when many people imagined the fate of modern man to be somehow tied to the fate of the novel. Was the novel dead or was it not? Much was thought to depend on the answer. And for people who worried about this Bellow was the great hope. Atlas quotes Norman Podhoretz: “There was a sense in which the validity of a whole phase of American experience was felt to hang on the question of whether or not he would turn out to be a great novelist.”
ellauri222.html on line 141: This notion that Bellow’s achievement as a novelist was redemptive of the form was a consistent theme in the reviews up through “Herzog.” So was the notion that his protagonists were representatives of the modern condition. After “Herzog,” those reactions largely disappeared. People stopped fretting about the death of the novel, and Bellow’s protagonists started being treated as what they always were, oddballs and cranks. But the critical reception of Bellow’s books in the first half of his career funded his reputation. It cashed out, ultimately, in the Nobel Prize. Nobels are awarded to writers who are judged to have universalized the marginal.
ellauri222.html on line 151: The first two hundred pages of “Augie March” are the best writing Bellow ever did. He created an idiolect that had no model. “I am an American, Chicago born . . . and go at things as I have taught myself, free-style, and will make the record in my own way: first to knock, first admitted; sometimes an innocent knock, sometimes a not so innocent.” Nobody speaks or writes that way—which is exactly what the sentence is telling us.
ellauri222.html on line 153: Augie is a street-urchin autodidact. Never taught how to write a proper sentence, he invents a style of his own. He is an epigrammist and a raconteur, La Rochefoucauld in the body of a precocious twelve-year-old, a Huck Finn who has taken too many Great Books courses. With this strange mélange of ornate locutions, Chicago patois, Joycean portmanteaus, and Yiddish cadences, Bellow found himself able to produce page after page of acrobatic verbal stunts:
ellauri222.html on line 167: Most reviews were enthusiastic, though. “Augie March” was not a best-seller, but it sold well and won a major award. The year it came out, Bellow took a job at Bard College. He and Anita were separated, and he had a new girlfriend, Sondra Tschacbasov, called Sasha. She was sixteen years younger and strikingly attractive. They met at Partisan Review, where she worked as a secretary.
ellauri222.html on line 171: Saul and Sasha got married in 1956, after Bellow had obtained a Nevada divorce. Sasha accepted the domestic role that Bellow insisted on without demur. She says that when they had a son, Adam, Bellow told her that the baby was her responsibility—he was too old to raise another kid. In 1958, Bellow was offered a one-year position at the University of Minnesota. He insisted that Ludwig receive an appointment as well; the university obliged, and the families moved to Minneapolis together.
ellauri222.html on line 185: “Herzog” was nevertheless received the way all Bellow’s novels had been received: as a report on the modern condition. Many of the critics who reviewed it—Irving Howe, Philip Rahv, Stanley Edgar Hyman, Richard Ellmann, Richard Poirier—knew Bellow personally and knew all about the divorce. (Poirier was an old friend of Ludwig’s; the review he published, in Partisan Review, was a hatchet job.) None of these reviewers mentioned the autobiographical basis of the book, and several of them warned against reading it autobiographically, without ever explaining why anyone might want to. The world had no way of knowing that the story was not completely made up.
ellauri222.html on line 193: And it got even better. Jack Ludwig reviewed the novel. He informed readers of Holiday that “the book is a major breakthrough.” By no means should it be read as autobiography—“as if an artist with Bellow’s enormous gifts were simply playing at second-guessing reality, settling scores.” No, in this book, Ludwig wrote, “Bellow is after something greater.” The greater something turns out to be “man’s contradiction, his absurdity, his alienation,” and so on. It was pretty chutzpadik, as even Bellow had to admit. But by then he was laughing all the way to the bank.
ellauri222.html on line 195: You can see the biographical problem. From the beginning, Bellow drew on people he knew, including his wives and girlfriends and the members of his own family, for his characters. In “Augie March,” almost every character—and there are dozens—was directly based on some real-life counterpart. Most of “Herzog” is a roman à clef. Leader therefore decided to treat the novels as authoritative sources of information about the people in Bellow’s life. When Leader tells us about Jack Ludwig and Sondra Tschacbasov, he quotes the descriptions of Gersbach and Madeleine in “Herzog.” In the case of the many relatives with counterparts in “Augie March,” this can get confusing. You’re not always sure whether you’re reading about a person or a fictional version of that person.
ellauri222.html on line 197: One reason for reading biographies of writers like Bellow, who draw from people in their own lives, is to learn what those people were really like, or at least what they were like to someone who is not Bellow. You often can’t do that with Leader’s biography. Leader also wants to assess Bellow’s accomplishment as a novelist. He has to keep three balls in the air at once: the biographical story, an interpretation of the fiction as autobiography, and a consideration of the fiction as fiction. That’s why his book is so long.
ellauri222.html on line 199: Structure was always Bellow’s weak point. One of his first editors at Partisan Review, Dwight Macdonald, worried about what he called a “centerless facility.” Podhoretz was not wrong about the problem of shapelessness in “Augie March.” The novel’s antic style is like a mechanical bull. For a few hundred pages, Bellow is having the time of his life, letting his invention take him where it will. By the end, he is just hanging on, waiting for the music to stop. It takes the story five hundred and thirty-six pages to get there.
ellauri222.html on line 207: Actually, these episodes were not entirely invented. Bellow lifted them straight out of “The Brothers Karamazov.” A child tortured by its parents is Ivan Karamazov’s illustration of the problem of evil: what kind of God would allow that to happen? And Herzog with his gun at the window is a reënactment of Dmitri Karamazov, the murder weapon in his hand, spying through the window on his father. Dmitri is caught and convicted of a murder he desired but did not commit. “Herzog,” though, is a comedy. The next day, Herzog gets in a minor traffic accident and the cops discover the loaded gun in his car. But, after some hairy moments in the police station, he is let go. Desperately searching the Great Books for wisdom, Herzog briefly finds himself living in one. He can’t wait to get out.
ellauri222.html on line 257: For a man for such small balls, he had huge needs. The writing life needed to be supported. He failed his children; he left them, and it was a wound he carried around like a medal. He knew the cruelty of this. At the very end, though he was not Rosie's father (oops), he was in the house. He and Rosie would watch The Lion King together: in the final, unpleasant stages of his last illness, he was at the point where he didn't mind watching that same film over and over. I was somehow managing Rosie and Saul in the same way." Do they have a relationship with Saul's sons? Not really. Rosie has special needs, and Jänis is focused very much on her. Their house is cozy, not grand, there just happen to be photographs of a Nobel laureate on almost every shelf. Guess which one?
ellauri222.html on line 267: But that's not the outstanding defect of IMAC. Your reader, out of respect for your powers, is more than willing to go along with you. He will not, as I was not, be able to go along with your Ira, probably the least attractive of all your characters. I assume that you can no more bear Ira than the reader can. But you stand loyally by this cast-iron klutz – a big strong stupid man who attracts you for reasons invisible to me.
ellauri222.html on line 277: One of your persistent themes is the purgation one can obtain only through rage. The forces of aggression are liberating, etc. And I can see that as a legitimate point of view. OK if your characters are titans. But Eve is simply a pitiful woman and Sylphid is a pampered, wicked fat girl with a bison hump. These are not titans.
ellauri222.html on line 310: tulee nobelisti ja kestä
ellauri222.html on line 350: William's claim to the English throne derived from his familiar sodomist relationship with the childless Anglo-Saxon king Edward the Confessor, who may have encouraged William's hopes for the throne. Edward died in January 1066 and was succeeded by his brother-in-law Harold Godwinson. The Norwegian king Harald Hardrada invaded northern England in September 1066 and was victorious at the Battle of Fulford on 20 September, but Godwinson's army defeated and killed Hardrada at the Battle of Stamford Bridge on 25 September. Three days later on 28 September, William's invasion force of thousands of men and hundreds of ships landed at Pevensey in Sussex in southern England. Harold marched south to oppose him, leaving a significant portion of his army in the north. Harold's army confronted William's invaders on 14 October at the Battle of Hastings. William's force defeated Harold, who was killed in the engagement, and William became king.
ellauri222.html on line 359: The foremost theme in The Adventures of Augie March is the search for identity. Unsure of what he wants from life, Augie is pulled along into the schemes of friends and strangers, trying on different identities and learning about the world through jobs ranging from union organizer to eagle trainer to book thief. His path seems random, but as Augie notes, quoting the Greek philosopher Heraclitus, “a man’s character is his fate.” As Augie goes through life, knocking on various doors, these doors of fate open up for him as if by random, but the knocks are unquestionably his own. In the end of the novel, Augie defines his identity as a “Columbus of those near-at-hand,” whose purpose in life is to knock some eggs. Augie notes that “various jobs” are the Rosetta stone, or key, to his entire life. Americans define themselves by their work (having no roots, family or land to stick to), and Augie is a sort of vagabond, trying on different identities as he goes along. Unwilling to limit himself by specializing in any one area, Augie drifts from job to job. He becomes a handbill-distributor, a paperboy, a Woolworth’s stocker, a newsstand clerk, a trinket-seller, a Christmas helper at a department store, a flower delivery boy, a butler, a clerk at fine department stores, a paint salesman, a dog groomer, a book thief, a coal yard worker, a housing inspector, a union organizer, an eagle-trainer, a gambler, a literary researcher, a business machine salesman, a merchant marine, and ultimately an importer-exporter working in wartime Europe. Augie’s job changing is emblematic of the social mobility that is so quintessentially American. Augie is the American Everyman, continually reinventing himself, like Donald Duck. Olemme kaikki oman onnemme Akuja, joopa joo. Yrmf, olet tainnut mainita. You are telling me!
ellauri222.html on line 403: Sailor Bulba is an accomplice in the robbery committed by Joe Gorman and Augie. Brute-nosed and bearish, he is a menacing, dangerous figure.
ellauri222.html on line 413:
Hyman and Anna Coblin
ellauri222.html on line 415: Anna Coblin is Mama’s cousin. Augie goes to live with her family so he can help them deliver newspapers. Hyman Coblin is a steady man who enjoys going to burlesque shows downtown. He is generous with Augie. Anna, a big, emotional woman with spiraling reddish hair, dotes on Augie and hopes he will marry their daughter Freidl one day. They also have a son, Howard, who was in the war in Nicaragua.
ellauri222.html on line 431: Tillie Einhorn is William Einhorn’s wife. A heavy, attractive lady, she worshipfully obeys her husband and tolerates, or overlooks, his extramarital affairs. After the stock market crash, she helps make money by running a cafeteria inside the poolroom.
ellauri222.html on line 471: Joe Gorman is a notorious Chicago thief whom Augie meets in the poolroom. Augie helps Gorman with a robbery and later goes on a road trip with him to move illegal immigrants across the border. The police catch Gorman, but Augie gets away.
ellauri222.html on line 499: The Kinsmans are undertakers. Their son Joe Kinsman ran off with Howard Coblin to join the Marines and went to war in Nicaragua.
ellauri222.html on line 555: Augie, the hero of the novel, is a Jewish-American boy coming of age in Depression-era Chicago. Since their father abandoned the family, Augie and his two brothers are raised by their slow-witted mother and surrogate “Grandma” Lausch. Augie, good-looking with “tall hair” and green-gray eyes, is a soft-hearted young man whose sympathy for others often gets him into trouble. He holds a variety of jobs throughout his life and learns from different people he encounters. People tend to “adopt” Augie and try to groom him into the person they want him to be, but he really wants to become his own person. The name Augie is short for “August,” which means “Great.” Augie has a desire for greatness, but he has no idea of how to do it, thinking it beyond his ability to “breathe the pointy, star-furnished air at its highest difficulty.” He goes along through life repeating the same mistakes. In the end, Augie realizes that his life has been a voyage of discovery. Whether or not he has been a success, he doesn’t know, but he will continue with unquenchable optimism and hope, “forever rising up.”
ellauri222.html on line 619: Five Properties is Anna Coblin’s brother. An immense, long-armed man with a gleeful, insincere smile, he drives a dairy truck and loves to boast that he has “Five prope’ties, plente money.” The money was earned by service during the war in Poland. His goal is to marry an American woman.
ellauri222.html on line 627: The Renlings hire Augie to sell horse-riding gear at their sporting goods store in Evanston, Illinois. Mrs. Renling wishes to make Augie the perfect gentleman by giving him a distinguished wardrobe and sending him to college. Since the Renlings have no children of their own, they even offer to adopt Augie, but he declines.
ellauri222.html on line 629: Robey
ellauri222.html on line 631: A miserly millionaire with a stuttering problem, Robey is working on a book he calls The Needle’s Eye, an investigation into the nature and source of happiness. He hires Augie as a research assistant. As Augie listens to Robey discuss his book idea, he finds that the man makes sense only part of the time. He realizes that Robey is a “crank” who only wants someone to be an ear for his half-baked ideas.
ellauri222.html on line 635: Clarence Ruber is a friend of Augie’s from school who gives Augie a job selling paint.
ellauri222.html on line 679: Tambow is Jimmy Klein’s uncle, a “big wheel” in Republican ward politics. Jimmy and Augie pass out campaign literature and do other odd jobs for him. Tambow is divorced and his own sons, Donald and Clem, refuse to work for him. He dies and leaves all his money to Clem and Donald.
ellauri222.html on line 705: In a 1943 issue of The American Scholar, Marston wrote: "Not even girls want to be girls so long as our feminine archetype lacks force, strength, and power. Not wanting to be girls, they don't want to be tender, submissive, peace-loving as good women are. Women's strong qualities have become despised because of their weakness. The obvious remedy is to create a feminine character with all the strength of Superman plus all the allure of a good and beautiful woman."
ellauri222.html on line 743: His literary tastes are also very interesting. Lord Pococurante is quite able to criticize Homer, Horace, and Cicero; there is nothing, which may seem flawless. His ability to find defects in everything prevents him from taking pleasure in literature, philosophy, and painting. It is obvious that the author is ironic about him, it can be deduced from Candides remark “But is there not a pleasure in criticizing everything, in pointing out faults where others see nothing but beauties’ (Voltaire, 73). The main problem is that such a world outlook is a personal tragedy, and such an attitude may eventually result in suicide.
ellauri222.html on line 761: The first novel to display Bellow's characteristic expansiveness and optimism, The Adventures of Augie March presents a dazzling panorama of comically eccentric characters in a picaresque tale narrated by the irrepressible title character, who defends human possibility by embracing the hope that "There may gods turn up anywhere." Subsequent novels vary in tone from the intensity of Seize the Day to the exuberance of Henderson the Rain King to the ironic ambiguity of Herzog, but all explore the nature of human male freedom and the tensions between the individual's need for self and the needs of society. Augie March, Tommy Wilhelm, Eugene Henderson, and Moses Herzog all yearn to please themselves by finding the beauty in life. By creating these highly individualistic characters and the milieu in which they move, Bellow reveals the flashes of the extraordinary in the ordinary that make such fun possible and rejects the attitude that everyday life must be trivial and ignoble. It is like that just for the losers.
ellauri222.html on line 793: In all of Bellow's works, an appreciation of the cultural context in which his protagonists struggle is essential to understanding these characters and their search for renewal. Bellow's vision centers almost exclusively on Jewish male experience in contemporary urban America. Proud of their heritage, his heroes are usually second-generation Jewish immigrants who seek to discover how they can live meaningfully in their American present while honoring their skinless knobs. Much of their ability to maintain their belief in humanity despite their knowledge of the world can be attributed to the affirmative nature of the Jewish culture. Bellovian heroes live in a WASP society in which they are only partially assimilated. However, as Jews have done historically, they maintain their concern for morality and community despite their cultural displacement.
ellauri222.html on line 799: Stylistically, Bellow's fiction reflects some of the same tensions that his protagonists seek to balance. His concern with social and personal destruction has been traced to the common run of European writers such as Flaubert, Dostoevsky, Kafka, Sartre, and Camus. But Bellow's fiction also has many ties to the American literary tradition. His neotranscendentalism (what? Emersonian tomfoolery I guess), his identification with America, and the loose form of his most acclaimed novels link him most obviously to Emerson and Whitman.
ellauri222.html on line 819: An intensely intellectual writer who peppers his novels with allusions, Bellow draws on many cultural traditions in his analysis of both the sources of American experience and its present manifestations. His fiction fully documents the decline of Western civilization without conceding its obvious demise, and the ambiguity and tenuousness of even his most positive endings balance sadness and comic skepticism with the steadfast faith that he the artist can effect coherence and order, or failing that a lot of cash, out of the chaos of modern experience. His tip for success: kusettakaa minkä jaxatte! For his achievement in confronting the modern existential dilemma with compassion and humor, Bellow's place in twentieth-century American literary history seems assured by drooling groupies like myself.
ellauri222.html on line 824: Verdict: probably a Jew.
ellauri222.html on line 837: British critics tend to regard the American predilection for Big Novels as a vulgar neurosis — like the American predilection for big cars or big hamburgers. Oh God, we think: here comes another sweating, free-dreaming maniac with another thousand-pager; here comes another Big Mac. First, Dos Passos produced the Great American Novel; now they all want one. Yet in a sense every ambitious American novelist is genuinely trying to write a novel called USA. Perhaps this isn’t just a foible; perhaps it is an inescapable response to America – twentieth-century America, racially mixed and mobile, twenty-four hour, endless, extreme, superabundantly various. American novels are big all right, but partly because America is big too. You need plenty of nerve, ink and energy to do justice to the place, and no one has made greater efforts than Saul Bellow. In 1976 Bellow was awarded the Nobel Prize for Literature, praised by the Swedes ‘for human understanding and subtle analysis of contemporary culture’. Many times in Bellow’s novels we are reminded that ‘being human’ isn’t the automatic condition of every human being. Like freedom or sanity, it is not a given but a gift, a talent, an accomplishment, an objective. The busiest sections of the Chicago bookstores, I noticed, were those marked ‘Personal Growth’.
ellauri222.html on line 906: Menin ja puhuin tovereilleni, ihmisten suureksi hämmästykseksi, yleismaailmallisesta muurahaiskeosta jonka vihollinen (kommunistit ennenkaikkea) perustaisi jos voittaisi, kohtalosta jota kukaan ei voisi välttää kun koko ihmiskunta joutuisi yhden ainoan hallituksen alaiseksi, ihmisaavikosta joka hyökyisi mahdin hirviömäisten pyramidien juureen. Muutamien vuosikymmenien kuluttua tämän saman maan pinnalla, saman auringon ja kuun alla, missä kerran oli elänyt jumalien kaltaisia ihmisiä, olisi jäljellä vain tämä ihmishyönteisten sukukunta joka kehittäisi itsensä yhtä peikkomaiseksi kuin ulkona uhkaava avaruus ja jäljittelisi sitä hiomalla itselleen koneelliset säännöt jotka olisivat yhtä muuttumattomia kuin fysiikan lait. Kuuliaisuus olisi jumala, vapaus paholainen. Kukaan uusi Mooses ei nousisi johtamaan pakoa orjuudesta, koska uusien pyramidien maassa ei Moosesta syntyisi. Niin, kohottauduin takajaloilleni kuin Bizcocho ja paasasin voimaini takaa. Ja sitten luistin kuzunnoista kauppalaivastoon. No justiinsa tällästä termiittikekoa on jenkit rakentaneet hiki tukassa etenkin neuvostolan hajottua, sillä erolla että globaalissa kapitalistipesässä voi olla useita kilpailevia kuningattaria (tai siis kuninkaita, sori siitä). Sale kazoo Chicagoa ja ymmärtää: yxilö ei ole täällä mitään. Ei yhtään mitään. No mixi pitäskään.
ellauri222.html on line 963: For n≤4 and any bounded smooth domain Ω⊂ℝ n , we establish the existence of a global weak solution for the Landau-Lifshitz equation on Ω with respect to smooth initial-boundary data, which is smooth off a closed set with locally finite n-dimensional parabolic Hausdorff measure. The approach is based on the Ginzburg-Landau approximation, a time slice energy monotonicity inequality, and an energy decay estimate under the smallness of renormalized Ginzburg-Landau energies.
ellauri222.html on line 996: Ellsworth Huntington, (born Sept. 16, 1876, Galesburg, Ill., U.S.—died Oct. 17, 1947, New Haven, Conn.), U.S. geographer who explored the influence of climate on civilization. Ellsworth Huntington (September 16, 1876 – October 17, 1947) was a professor of geography at Yale University during the early 20th century, known for his studies on environmental determinism/climatic determinism, economic growth, economic geography, and scientific racism. He served as President of the Ecological Society of America in 1917, the Association of American Geographers in 1923 and President of the Board of Directors of the American Eugenics Society from 1934 to 1938.
ellauri222.html on line 1036: Megan’s parents lobbied for a new law, stating that, had they known a convicted sex offender had been living in their neighborhood, they would have been better prepared to protect her. The law, dubbed Megan’s Law, requires public access to the names and locations of those convicted of any sexual offense.
ellauri222.html on line 1054: The white man," he resumed, "respects no land but his own. If it does not belong to himself he thinks that it belongs to nobody, and that Manitou merely keeps it in waiting for him. He is here now with his women and children in the land that we and our fathers have owned since the beginning of time. Many of the white men have fallen beneath our bullets and tomahawks. We have burned their new houses and uprooted their corn, but they are more than they were last year, and next year they will be more than they are now."
ellauri222.html on line 1065: A sudden light glowed in the eyes of the young chief. There was something akin in the souls of these two, and perhaps Timmendiquas alone knew it. He raised one hand, gave a one-finger salute in the white man´s fashion, and said four words. "I shall not forget." So who cares, some corpses more or less, noblemen's tit for tat takes right of way.
ellauri222.html on line 1067: Then he was gone in the forest, and Henry went back to the battle field, where the firing had now wholly ceased. The white victory was complete. Many Indians had fallen. Their losses here and at the river had been so great that it would be long before they could be brought into action again. But the renegades had made good their escape. They did not find the body of a single one of them, and it was certain that they were living to do more mischief. Noble warriors don´t change sides, they stick to their own color scheme.
ellauri222.html on line 1080: Sir Walter Raleigh was one of the most famous explorers of Elizabeth I's reign. His courage and good looks made him a favourite of the Queen's, and she rewarded him for his handsomeness. Raleigh was also a scholar and a poet, but he is usually remembered for introducing the essential potato, and the addictive tobacco.
ellauri223.html on line 66: Capt. Moreover, the race is managed for the good of the commonwealth, and not of private individuals, and the magistrates must be obeyed. They deny what we hold—viz., that it is natural to man to recognize his offspring and to educate them, and to use his wife and house and children as his own. For they say that children are bred for the preservation of the species and not for individual pleasure, as St. Thomas also asserts. Therefore the breeding of children has reference to the commonwealth, and not to individuals, except in so far as they are constituents of the commonwealth. And since individuals for the most part bring forth children wrongly and educate them wrongly, they consider that they remove destruction from the State, and therefore for this reason, with most sacred fear, they commit the education of the children, who, as it were, are the element of the republic, to the care of magistrates; for the safety of the community is not that of a few. And thus they distribute male and female breeders of the best natures according to philosophical rules. Plato thinks that this distribution ought to be made by lot, lest some incel men seeing that they are kept away from the beautiful women, should rise up with anger and hatred against the magistrates; and he thinks further that those who do not deserve cohabitation with the more beautiful women, should be deceived while the lots are drawn by the magistrates, so that at all times the women who are suitably second rate should fall to their lot, not those whom they desire. Stop the steal!
ellauri223.html on line 70: Domestic affairs and partnerships are of little account, because, excepting the sign of honor, each one receives what he is in need of. To the heroes and heroines of the republic, it is customary to give the pleasing gifts of honor, beautiful wreaths, sweet food, heroine, or splendid clothes, while they are feasting. In the daytime all use white garments within the city, but at night or outside the city they use red garments either of wool or silk. They hate black as they do dung, and therefore they dislike the Japanese, who are fond of black, and Africans, for obvious reasons. Pride they consider the most execrable vice, and one who acts proudly is chastised with the most ruthless correction. Wherefore no one thinks it lowering to wait at table or to work in the kitchen or fields or clean the toilets. All work they call discipline, and thus they say that it is honorable to go on foot, to do any act of nature, to see with the eye, and to speak with the tongue, and waft with the tail; and when there is need, they distinguish philosophically between tears and spittle. Every man who, when he is told off to work, does his duty, is considered very honorable.
ellauri223.html on line 74: G.M. This seems excellent and sacred, but the community of women is a thing too difficult to attain. The holy Roman Clement says that wives ought to be common in accordance with the apostolic institution, and praises Plato and Socrates, who thus teach, but the Glossary interprets this community with regard to obedience. And Tertullian agrees with the Glossary, that the first Christians had everything in common except wives.
ellauri223.html on line 80: They have an abundance of all things, since everyone likes to be industrious, their labors being slight and profitable. They are docile, and that one among them who is head of the rest in duties of this kind they call king. For they say that this is the proper name of the leaders, and it does not belong to ignorant persons. It is wonderful to see how men and women march together collectively, and always in obedience to the voice of the king. Nor do they regard him with loathing as we do, for they know that although he is greater than themselves, he is for all that their father and brother.
ellauri223.html on line 82: They injure nobody, and they do not put up with injury, and they never go to battle unless when provoked. They assert that the whole earth will in time come to live in accordance with their customs. Furthermore, they have artificial fires, battles on sea and land, and many strategic secrets. Therefore they are nearly always victorious. (Tää kuulostaa aika lailla jenkkipropagandalta.)
ellauri223.html on line 84: Capt. Their food consists of flesh, butter, honey, cheese, garden herbs, and vegetables of various kinds. They were unwilling at first to slay animals, because it seemed cruel; but thinking afterward that is was also cruel to destroy herbs which have a share of sensitive feeling, they saw that they would perish from hunger unless they did an unjustifiable action for the sake of justifiable ones, and so now they all eat meat. Nevertheless, they do not kill willingly useful animals, such as oxen and horses. They observe the difference between useful and harmful foods, and for this they employ the science of medicine. They always change their food. First they eat flesh, then fish, then afterward they go back to flesh, and nature is never incommoded or weakened. The old people use the more digestible kind of food, and take three meals a day, eating only a little. But the general community eat twice, and the boys four times, that they may satisfy nature. The length of their lives is generally 100 years, but often they reach 200.
ellauri223.html on line 124: It is often associated with a version of the problem of evil: if some things in the world were to be admitted to be evil, this could be taken to reflect badly on the creator of the world, who would then be difficult to admit to be completely good. The merit of the doctrine in serving as a response to this version of the problem of evil is disputed.
ellauri223.html on line 168: In the last third of the book, the Head of the Salomon's House takes one of the European visitors to show him all the scientific background of Salomon's House, where experiments are conducted in Baconian method to understand and conquer nature (no tietysti), and to apply the collected knowledge to the betterment of society. Namely: 1) the end, or purpose, of their foundation; 2) the preparations they have for their works; 3) the several employments and functions whereto their fellows are assigned; 4) and the ordinances and rites which they observe.
ellauri223.html on line 190: At the age of 45, Bacon married Alice Barnham, the 13-year-old daughter of a well-connected London alderman and MP. Bacon wrote two sonnets proclaiming his love for Alice. The first was written during his courtship and the second on his wedding day, 10 May 1606. When Bacon was appointed lord chancellor, "by special Warrant of the King", Lady Bacon was given precedence over all other Court ladies. Bacon's personal secretary and chaplain, William Rawley, wrote in his biography of Bacon that his marriage was one of "much conjugal love and respect", mentioning a robe of honour that he gave to Alice and which "she wore unto her dying day, being twenty years and more after his death".
ellauri223.html on line 214: In 1639, Viscountess St Albans and Sir Frodo Underhill became estranged, and began to live separately. In a later lawsuit, after her death, Underhill blamed Robert Tyrrell, or Turrell, their manservant, for this alienation of affections. In her will of 1642, she left half her property to Turrell, and other property to her nephew, Stephen Soames. She was buried in the old Parish Church of Eyworth, Bedfordshire, 9 July 1650, near her mother, and her sister, Lady Dorothy Constable.
ellauri223.html on line 226: The Jacobean antiquarian Sir Simonds D'Ewes (Bacon's fellow Member of Parliament) implied there had been a question of bringing him to trial for buggery, which his brother Anthony Bacon had also been charged with.
ellauri223.html on line 228: In his Autobiography and Correspondence, in the diary entry for 3 May 1621, the date of Bacon's censure by Parliament, D'Ewes describes Bacon's love for his Welsh serving-men, in particular Godrick, a "very effeminate-faced youth" whom he calls "his catamite and bedfellow".
ellauri226.html on line 89: Sanoi sardiiniasuinen Grazia Deledda parhaisiinsa pukeutuneille Nobel-vieraille pokatessaan toiselle vielä pyylevämmälle italiattarelle, Matilda Seraolle alunperin tarkoitetun nobelpalkinnon vuonna 1926. Matildalta dynamiittipötkö meni sivu suun koska pelle Mussolini torppasi sen signora Seraon allekirjoitettua Benedetto Crocen antifasistisen manifestin. Serao kuoli vuoden kuluttua sydäninfarktiin. Vielä yxi paxu ruumis pää alaspäin hirtetyn Beniton syntilistalle.
ellauri226.html on line 91: Deleddalla oli britti kannustaja pornografisessa D.H.Lawrencessa, josta on jo paasaus albumissa 117. Taavi oli ilmeisesti vielä niin kärmeissään saapasrengeille suuren sodan jäljiltä, ettei sen sielu sietänyt lukea Seraota eikä sitä toista mahtailevaa pikkumiestä, mikäs sen nimi taas olikaan oli, d'Annunzio. Lyön vaikka vetoa että Taavi suunnitteli vetää wiixeen Graziaa käydessään Sardiniassa 5v aikaisemmin, ja Nobel-palkinto oli sen tapa sanoa Deleddalle "Grazie".
ellauri226.html on line 111: Sentään sympaattista Grazialta että se piti (ainakin siihen asti) lyhimmän Nobel-kiitospuheen. Danke schön und auf Wiedersehn, jotain tollasta.
ellauri226.html on line 116: Dave is full of breathless switchbacks. You’re always veering giddily from fleeting exaltations (the joy of motion, the wildness of the landscape, the generosity of a peasant) to tedious exasperations (almost everything else). Luckily he had his wife along, the formidable Frieda (he refers to her as “the Q.B.,” for queen bee - Kuningatar! Eskin valtiatar on sekin vanhemmiten aika formidable), whose shrewd affirmations provided a foil for his grumbling discontents. Lawrence found the city “all bibs and bobs" . . . rather bare, rather stark, much of the city was levelled by Allied bombs, and it has not exactly been lovingly restored. “They pour themselves one over the other,” Lawrence sniffed of the Italians, “like so much melted butter over parsnips.” Lawrence ize preferoi tankeampia kelttijuurikkaita.
ellauri226.html on line 127: Six brawny young men with faux-hawks hung out in the doorway, drinking Ichnusa beers, and observing us in a desultory way. “Let’s not!” I said.
ellauri226.html on line 140: Nuovo, however, looked placid and tame. Nuovo was home to the Nobel laureate Grazia Deledda, whose novels Lawrence so admired, but her modest birthplace was closed. We walked around aimlessly, seeing the place through his eyes, but, of course, through Lawrence’s eyes “there’s nothing to see.” This is no longer quite true; there are two good museums in town. But, by now, it had taken on the sound of a mantra. “Sights are an irritating bore,” he wrote. “Happy is the town that has nothing to show.”
ellauri226.html on line 149: Länkkäreitä jauhonaamoja ryömii joka nurkasta kuin hapsenkakkiaisia. 91-vuotias "Bernie" Ecclestone on syytteessä 0.5G punnan verokavalluxesta. Ecclestone kieltää kaiken. Jenkkinaisten futixen valmentajista on 50% saanut potkut naaraiden ahdistelusta. Ne kieltävät kaiken. Ruåzalaiset kieltäytyvät säästämästä sähköä, ei se niille kuulu, ei kermaperseiden tarvi värjötellä kylmässä, se häirizisi julmyyssiä. Mitäs meni sossut sulkemaan ydinvoimalat, vekuttaa SD Jimi Åkesson. Jalkapallon MM vuonna 2030 voitais pelata Ukrainassa, siellä pitäisi siihen mennessä tasamaata löytyä. Japsut, eteläkorealaiset ja lännen maailmanherrat vastaavat Pohjois-korean kuurakettiin nyt terävöitetyillä sotaharjotuxilla, joissa kalibroidaan Pnom Penhiin suunnattavia täsmäpommeja. Tää kaikki vaan yhden päivän Hoblasta.
ellauri226.html on line 160: P.S. Eikä siinä vielä kaikki! Hoblan savolaisvahvistus Erja Alajärvi ehdottaa, että suomenkielisten ei enää tarvizisi yrittääkään koulussa oppia pakkoruåzia. Ruåzista ei enää annettaisi arvosanoja, tunnit olis pelkkää suolausta jossa heitellään lennokkeja, tehdään Trump-ilmeitä open selän takana ja näpytellään luureja. Vittu kannattiko ottaa toimituxeen tollasta viidettä kolonnaa? Eihän se ole edes indogermaani, vaan ihan tavallinen mongoloidi Itä-Suomesta.
ellauri226.html on line 175: Per Gunnar Henning Evander, född 25 april 1933 i Ovansjö, Gävleborgs län, död 16 maj 2022 var en svensk folkhögskollärare, författare, manusförfattare och farbrorman. Evander var en mycket framgångsrik och produktiv författare. Evanders romaner kretsar ofta kring förlorarna i folkhemmet. Gång på gång gestaltar han personer som är svikna av samhället och har psykiska problem, som han.
ellauri226.html on line 200: P-G:s hustru Ann har inte kontaktförbud, vilket förvaltare och advokat önskar att hon skulle få. Och gifta kvinnor anser sig trots tyngande hustruplikter och otrohetsproblem inte ha det minsta.
ellauri226.html on line 211: Megan Roby
ellauri226.html on line 266: Derrick’s sentiments were echoed by my mom Kathleen Roby, who grew up in
ellauri226.html on line 267: in the 1950s and 1960s. Mrs. Roby described growing up in “a very, very safe neighborhood." Like Derrick, she goes on and on to speak about playing outside and unlocked doors as evidence of the apparent safety and tranquility of the neighborhood. It was like Moomindale! Ei muumitaloa lukita yöxi hei Muu-u-mi!
ellauri226.html on line 269: According to Roby, children often left their bikes and scooters out unlocked with no fear of theft. She also spoke in great detail of the freedom afforded to her as a young child: In fact, for me, as a first grader going to school, I took a city bus, alone. Nobody took me to the bus stop, I would leave my apartment, wave
ellauri226.html on line 275: For both Dr. Derrick and Mrs. Roby, the independence that they were
ellauri226.html on line 359: After Roby graduated from high school and began to venture out for the first time as an independent adult, she had to go outside of Parkchester
ellauri226.html on line 363: was in a section that was considered extremely dangerous, Roby was quickly sent down to Lincoln Hospital in the South Bronx, because of labor shortages.
ellauri226.html on line 365: According to Roby, the violence at Lincoln’s emergency in the neighborhood was apparent from the start, the room often had patients who had
ellauri226.html on line 369: therapy because of matching paralyzing gunshot wounds. Roby tried to provide physical therapy for these teenage boys but was unable to because they were
ellauri226.html on line 376: Werner, and Mrs. Roby noticed that their neighborhoods were
ellauri226.html on line 380: interviewed, began to experience or hear of petty crimes, like robberies
ellauri226.html on line 384: his Fordham neighborhood. For Derrick, examples of how the neighborhood changed were a subway robbery and the burglary of her home. These examples of petty crime prompted him and his family to move to another section
ellauri226.html on line 394: Kathleen Roby also started an increase of petty theft in the 1970s.
ellauri226.html on line 399: Roby also commented on a rise in petty crime in the mid-to-late
ellauri226.html on line 407: Other interviewees, such as Elvira Werner and Kathleen Roby commenced drug use in their neighborhoods and recommended it to others.
ellauri226.html on line 421: caused a problem was air conditioners.
ellauri226.html on line 423: As Roby explained, the building’s original wiring could not load
ellauri226.html on line 425: and Derrick’s buildings also suffered from the same problem, and all three commented on how the landlords would not change wiring because they felt as though they would not recoup the cost. Residents could not even use toasters!
ellauri226.html on line 439: That the migrations of old and new minority groups was the cause for The Bronx’s many problems was obvious. Many whites began to blame
ellauri226.html on line 443: The 1970s was a rough economic time for the U.S, including the city of New York and The Bronx in particular. The economic problems began early after World War
ellauri226.html on line 445: lost 500,000 factory jobs, and after 1960 civil service jobs were opened
ellauri226.html on line 446: up to those who did not live within the city limits, allowing increased job
ellauri226.html on line 448: influx of poor minority families in the 1950s and 1960s was thus cleverly met with a deteriorating and poor job market and limited employment opportunities. The declining job market continued into the 1970s when approximately 300 companies employing 10,000 workers went out of business or moved out of The Bronx between 1970 and 1977. Many of these businesses used low income and unskilled workers. By 1976 the long-term economic problems had taken their toll and the mayor's office estimated that between 25-30% of the city’s eligible work force was unemployed.
ellauri226.html on line 450: The economic problems seen in The Bronx were not industrially based but rather, the work force was dominated by totally clueless colorful minorities. By 1975 the entire city was engulfed in an economic crisis.
ellauri226.html on line 464: As the economic crisis worsened and city residents applied for welfare, particularly in The Bronx, the city simply reached its financial breaking point, with most of the welfare payments going to buy drugs. No wonder the poor turned to crime to solve their economic problems, seeing as the filthy rich seemed to be rolling in the dough. At the time the assumption was made by many older white residents
ellauri226.html on line 480: For Roby (my mom), the differences of the new minority groups and the old Jewish, Italian, and Irish immigrants was clear, especially given the unique rules that governed her Parkchester Jewish community. Parkchester was originally privately owned by the Metropolitan Life, who employed a private police force to ensure law and order and instituted very specific rules that bound the residents of the community, everything from double parking and noise levels to not walking on the grass.
ellauri226.html on line 482: For Roby, who grew up being told to listen to this private police force and follow the development’s rules with the same piety as the city’s police and laws, the ease with which new residents disregarded and violated these rules was a shock but oddly liberating.
ellauri226.html on line 483: In the 1970s, Roby claims that they often did not follow the strict rules of the development and some even flouted violations of the rules, making no secrect to owning washing machines and even destroying or damaging apartments in order to get a larger one!
ellauri226.html on line 489: prime motivating factor for their departure. What they really meant were the fucking 2nd wave immigrants. Brian Werner, Elvira Werner, and Kathleen Roby all moved out of The Bronx during the 1960s and 1970s, and describe crime and the changing neighborhood as the major influence in their decision. My mom herself, she began running red lights because she was afraid of being raped if stopping too long in certain intersections. After her tires were stolen repeatedly while waiting for the traffic lights to change Mrs. Roby moved to Long Island in 1980, where her better-off sister already resided.
ellauri226.html on line 505: many lower middle class johns to keep their jobs in the city and enabled many renters to become property owners, hooray!
ellauri226.html on line 512: For many white residents of The Bronx, Co-op City offered a solution to their problems. It provided private ownership and was a protected enclave within The Bronx. The opening of Co-op City prompted thousands of white families
ellauri236.html on line 73: A test of Meta and YouTube’s ad systems by the human rights group Global Witness revealed that the companies approved large numbers of misleading ads, including spots that encouraged people not to vote or gave false dates for when ballots could be posted. YouTube said it “reviewed the ads in question and removed those that violated our policies,” although the Global Witness report showed all the ads submitted were approved by the Google-owned site.
ellauri236.html on line 92: At the same rally north of Rio de Janeiro, Paulo Roberto, 55, a government worker, said, “Anyone who votes for Bolsonaro is worried about the voting machines.”
ellauri236.html on line 114: Naruhattuisella nuhruisella Sofi Oxasella on vain 1 unelma: hän haluaisi olla maailmankuulu nobelisti ja influensseri.
ellauri236.html on line 136: Mikä tekee kirjoista pulppia? Siis tuskin niihin käytetyn selluloosan arvoista? Kai se on vaan että ne keskittyvät apinoiden perusasiaan, niihin iänikuiseen kolmeen kirjaimeen E-F-K. Ei pienintä yritystäkään mihkään "ylevään" tai "korkealentoiseen", "nyt pohditaan", riittää kun porukat joka sivulla tappaa toisiaan, tienaa pätäkkää, ja pääsee luukulle. Mixi vaivautua johkin noobeliin, kuin näillä mennen pääsee aivan riittävän pitkälle? Saa rahaa, turpiin tutuille, hyvää syötävää, ja pääsee luukulle.
ellauri236.html on line 143: Chasen kirjojen nimet ovat korutonta E-F-K kertomaa. Ne on lähes kaikki suomennettu. Chase on 1 kaikkien aikojen myydyimpiä kirjailijoita. Eli kuten sanottu, mixi vaivautua kynäilemään mitään muuta? No noobelia ei näillä kyllä saa. Nobelkirjojen sivut kirjastossa on harvemmin tarttuneet tahmaisina toisiinsa. Sixi epäilen että myös tuntemattoman suomalaisen taiteilijan työ "Isokukko Uljas" (alla) on jäävä dynamiittipalkinnotta.
ellauri236.html on line 169: Prohibition and the ensuing Great Depression in the US (1929–39) had given rise to the Chicago gangster culture prior to World War II. This, combined with Chase's book trade experience, convinced him that there was a big demand for gangster stories. After reading James M. Cain's novel The Postman Always Rings Twice (1934), and having read about the American gangster Ma Barker and her sons, and with the help of maps and a slang dictionary, he wrote No Orchids for Miss Blandish in his spare time, he claimed over a period of six weekends, though his papers suggest it took longer. The book achieved remarkable notoriety and became one of the best-selling books of the decade. It was the subject of the 1944 essay "Raffles and Miss Blandish" by George Orwell (alla). Chase and Robert Nesbitt adapted it to a stage play of the same name which ran in London's West End to good reviews. The 1948 film adaptation was widely denounced as salacious due to the film's portrayal of violence and sexuality. Robert Aldrich did a remake, The Grissom Gang, in 1971.
ellauri236.html on line 173: Albumissa 63 pintaan ajelehtineesta Örvelöstä on hurjasti kirjailijakaskuja. Se tykkäsi tehdä kavereille jäyniä. Se oli kömpelö ja itkeskelevä kuin Ohukaisen ja Paxukaisen Ohukainen. Örvelö oli homofoobinen, mikä usein on merkki kaappihomosta. Se oli jonkin sortin sosialisti teoriassa, mutta kun vähän raaputti niin alta löytyi britti pesunkestävä. Lukiessaan nuorukaisena toisen samanlaisen piilohomon D.H. Lawrencen kirjoja se oli yhtä exyxissä kuin toimittaja Olavi Pylkkänen kun hyvixiä ja pahixia ei erottanut hatun väristä.
ellauri236.html on line 175: Örvelö arvosti snobismia ja hypokrisiaa apinoiden apinamaisen käytöxen jarruina. Se olis tykännyt modernista Mt. Foggista. Örvelön mielestä ainakin laahuxen on syytä pitää kiinni absoluuttisesta hyvästä ja pahasta. Intellektuelleilla on sitten ihan omat jutut.
ellauri236.html on line 190: It should be noticed that the book is not in the ordinary sense pornography. In this respect it is a flop. Unlike most books that deal in sexual sadism, it lays the emphasis on the cruelty and not on the pleasure. Slim, the ravisher of Miss Blandish, has ‘wet slobbering lips’: this is meant to be disgusting (tho I didn't find it so). But the scenes describing cruelty to women are comparatively perfunctory. The real high-spots of the book are cruelties committed by men upon other men; above all, the third-degreeing of the gangster, Eddie Schultz, who is lashed into a chair and flogged on the windpipe with truncheons, his arms broken by fresh blows as he breaks loose. My conclusion: Chase is a closet homosexual (I should know)! He's an algolagniac, like Swinburne!
ellauri236.html on line 192: In another of Mr. Chase's books, He Won't Need It Now, the hero, who is intended to be a sympathetic and perhaps even noble character, is described as stamping on somebody's face, and then, having crushed the man's mouth in, grinding his heel round and round in it. Even when physical incidents of this kind are not occurring, the mental atmosphere of these books is always the same. Their whole theme is the struggle for power and the triumph of the strong over the weak. The big gangsters wipe out the little ones as mercilessly as a pike gobbling up the little fish in a pond; the police kill off the criminals as cruelly as the angler kills the pike. If ultimately one sides with the police against the gangsters, it is merely because they are better organized and more powerful, because, in fact, the law is a bigger racket than crime. Might is right: vae victis. But think of it, what is new? All undying epic heroes are described as stamping on one anothers faces.
ellauri236.html on line 196: The obvious explanation is that in real life one is usually a passive victim, whereas in the adventure story one can think of oneself as being at the centre of events. But there is more to it than that. Here it is necessary to refer again to the curious fact of No Orchids being written — with technical errors, perhaps, but certainly with considerable skill — in the American language.
ellauri236.html on line 198: There exists in America an enormous literature of more or less the same stamp as No Orchids. Quite apart from books, there is the huge array of ‘pulp magazines’, graded so as to cater for different kinds of fantasy, but nearly all having much the same mental atmosphere. A few of them go in for straight pornography, but the great majority are quite plainly aimed at sadists and masochists. Sold at threepence a copy under the title of Yank Mags(4), these things used to enjoy considerable popularity in England, but when the supply dried up owing to the war, no satisfactory substitute was forthcoming. English imitations of the ‘pulp magazine’ do now exist, but they are poor things compared with the original. English crook films, again, never approach the American crook film in brutality. And yet the career of Mr. Chase shows how deep the American influence has already gone. Not only is he himself living a continuous fantasy-life in the Chicago underworld, but he can count on hundreds of thousands of readers who know what is meant by a ‘clipshop’ or the ‘hotsquat’, do not have to do mental arithmetic when confronted by ‘fifty grand’, and understand at sight a sentence like ‘Johnny was a rummy and only two jumps ahead of the nut-factory’. Evidently there are great numbers of English people who are partly americanized in language and, one ought to add, in moral outlook. For there was no popular protest against No Orchids. In the end it was withdrawn, but only retrospectively, when a later work, Miss Callaghan Comes to Grief, brought Mr. Chase's books to the attention of the authorities. Judging by casual conversations at the time, ordinary readers got a mild thrill out of the obscenities of No Orchids, but saw nothing undesirable in the book as a whole. Many people, incidentally, were under the impression that it was an American book reissued in England.
ellauri236.html on line 200: The thing that the ordinary reader ought to have objected to — almost certainly would have objected to, a few decades earlier — was the equivocal attitude towards crime. It is implied throughout No Orchids that being a criminal is only reprehensible in the sense that it does not pay. Being a policeman pays better, but there is no moral difference, since the police use essentially criminal methods. In a book like He Won't Need It Now the distinction between crime and crime-prevention practically disappears. This is a new departure for English sensational fiction, in which till recently there has always been a sharp distinction between right and wrong and a general agreement that virtue must triumph in the last chapter. English books glorifying crime (modern crime, that is — pirates and highwaymen are different) are very rare. Even a book like Raffles, as I have pointed out, is governed by powerful taboos, and it is clearly understood that Raffles's crimes must be expiated sooner or later. In America, both in life and fiction, the tendency to tolerate crime, even to admire the criminal so long as he is success, is very much more marked. It is, indeed, ultimately this attitude that has made it possible for crime to flourish upon so huge a scale. Books have been written about Al Capone that are hardly different in tone from the books written about Henry Ford, Stalin, Lord Northcliffe and all the rest of the ‘log cabin to White House’ brigade. And switching back eighty years, one finds Mark Twain adopting much the same attitude towards the disgusting bandit Slade, hero of twenty-eight murders, and towards the Western desperadoes generally. They were successful, they ‘made good’, therefore he admired them.
ellauri236.html on line 202: In a book like No Orchids one is not, as in the old-style crime story, simply escaping from dull reality into an imaginary world of action. One's escape is essentially into cruelty and sexual perversion. No Orchids is aimed at the power-instinct, which Raffles or the Sherlock Holmes stories are not. At the same time the English attitude towards crime is not so superior to the American as I may have seemed to imply. It too is mixed up with power-worship, and has become more noticeably so in the last twenty years. A writer who is worth examining is Edgar Wallace, especially in such typical books as The Orator and the Mr. J. G. Reeder stories. Wallace was one of the first crime-story writers to break away from the old tradition of the private detective and make his central figure a Scotland Yard official. Sherlock Holmes is an amateur, solving his problems without the help and even, in the earlier stories, against the opposition of the police. Moreover, like Lupin, he is essentially an intellectual, even a scientist. He reasons logically from observed fact, and his intellectuality is constantly contrasted with the routine methods of the police. Wallace objected strongly to this slur, as he considered it, on Scotland Yard, and in several newspaper articles he went out of his way to denounce Holmes by name. His own ideal was the detective-inspector who catches criminals not because he is intellectually brilliant but because he is part of an all-powerful organization. Hence the curious fact that in Wallace's most characteristic stories the ‘clue’ and the ‘deduction’ play no part. The criminal is always defeated by an incredible coincidence, or because in some unexplained manner the police know all about the crime beforehand. The tone of the stories makes it quite clear that Wallace's admiration for the police is pure bully-worship. A Scotland Yard detective is the most powerful kind of being that he can imagine, while the criminal figures in his mind as an outlaw against whom anything is permissible, like the condemned slaves in the Roman arena. His policemen behave much more brutally than British policemen do in real life — they hit people with out provocation, fire revolvers past their ears to terrify them and so on — and some of the stories exhibit a fearful intellectual sadism. (For instance, Wallace likes to arrange things so that the villain is hanged on the same day as the heroine is married.) But it is sadism after the English fashion: that is to say, it is unconscious, there is not overtly any sex in it, and it keeps within the bounds of the law. The British public tolerates a harsh criminal law and gets a kick out of monstrously unfair murder trials: but still that is better, on any account, than tolerating or admiring crime. If one must worship a bully, it is better that he should be a policeman than a gangster. Wallace is still governed to some extent by the concept of ‘not done’. In No Orchids anything is ‘done’ so long as it leads on to power. All the barriers are down, all the motives are out in the open. Chase is a worse symptom than Wallace, to the extent that all-in wrestling is worse than boxing, or Fascism is worse than capitalist democracy.
ellauri236.html on line 204: In borrowing from William Faulkner's Sanctuary, Chase only took the plot; the mental atmosphere of the two books is not similar. Chase really derives from other sources, and this particular bit of borrowing is only symbolic. What it symbolizes is the vulgarization of ideas which is constantly happening, and which probably happens faster in an age of print. Chase has been described as ‘Faulkner for the masses’, but it would be more accurate to describe him as Carlyle for the masses. He is a popular writer — there are many such in America, but they are still rarities in England — who has caught up with what is now fashionable to call ‘realism’, meaning the doctrine that might is right. The growth of ‘realism’ has been the great feature of the intellectual history of our own age. Why this should be so is a complicated question. The interconnexion between sadism, masochism, success-worship, power-worship, nationalism, and totalitarianism is a huge subject whose edges have barely been scratched, and even to mention it is considered somewhat indelicate. To take merely the first example that comes to mind, I believe no one has ever pointed out the sadistic and masochistic element in Bernard Shaw's work, still less suggested that this probably has some connexion with Shaw's admiration for dictators. Fascism is often loosely equated with sadism, but nearly always by people who see nothing wrong in the most slavish worship of Stalin. The truth is, of course, that the countless English intellectuals who kiss the arse of Stalin are not different from the minority who give their allegiance to Hitler or Mussolini, nor from the efficiency experts who preached ‘punch’, ‘drive’, ‘personality’ and ‘learn to be a Tiger man’ in the nineteen-twenties, nor from that older generation of intellectuals, Carlyle, Creasey and the rest of them, who bowed down before German militarism. All of them are worshipping power and successful cruelty. It is important to notice that the cult of power tends to be mixed up with a love of cruelty and wickedness for their own sakes. A tyrant is all the more admired if he happens to be a bloodstained crook as well, and ‘the end justifies the means’ often becomes, in effect, ‘the means justify themselves provided they are dirty enough’. This idea colours the outlook of all sympathizers with totalitarianism, and accounts, for instance, for the positive delight with which many English intellectuals greeted the Nazi-Soviet pact. It was a step only doubtfully useful to the U.S.S.R., but it was entirely unmoral, and for that reason to be admired; the explanations of it, which were numerous and self-contradictory, could come afterwards.
ellauri236.html on line 206: Until recently the characteristic adventure stories of the English-speaking peoples have been stories in which the hero fights against odds. This is true all the way from Robin Hood to Pop-eye the Sailor. Perhaps the basic myth of the Western world is Jack the Giant-killer, but to be brought up to date this should be renamed Jack the Dwarf-killer, and there already exists a considerable literature which teaches, either overtly or implicitly, that one should side with the big man against the little man. Most of what is now written about foreign policy is simply an embroidery on this theme, and for several decades such phrases as ‘Play the game’, ‘Don't hit a man when he's down’ and ‘It's not cricket’ have never failed to draw a snigger from anyone of intellectual pretensions. What is comparatively new is to find the accepted pattern, according to which (a) right is right and wrong is wrong, whoever wins, and (b) weakness must be respected, disappearing from popular literature as well. When I first read D. H. Lawrence's novels, at the age of about twenty, I was puzzled by the fact that there did not seem to be any classification of the characters into ‘good’ and ‘bad’. Lawrence seemed to sympathize with all of them about equally, and this was so unusual as to give me the feeling of having lost my bearings. Today no one would think of looking for heroes and villains in a serious novel, but in lowbrow fiction one still expects to find a sharp distinction between right and wrong and between legality and illegality. The common people, on the whole, are still living in the world of absolute good and evil from which the intellectuals have long since escaped. But the popularity of No Orchids and the American books and magazines to which it is akin shows how rapidly the doctrine of ‘realism’ is gaining ground.
ellauri236.html on line 208: Several people, after reading No Orchids, have remarked to me, ‘It's pure Fascism’. This is a correct description, although the book has not the smallest connexion with politics and very little with social or economic problems. It has merely the same relation to Fascism as, say Trollope's novels have to nineteenth-century capitalism. It is a daydream appropriate to a totalitarian age. In his imagined world of gangsters Chase is presenting, as it were, a distilled version of the modern political scene, in which such things as mass bombing of civilians, the use of hostages, torture to obtain confessions, secret prisons, execution without trial, floggings with rubber truncheons, drownings in cesspools, systematic falsification of records and statistics, treachery, bribery, and quislingism are normal and morally neutral, even admirable when they are done in a large and bold way. The average man is not directly interested in politics, and when he reads, he wants the current struggles of the world to be translated into a simple story about individuals. He can take an interest in Slim and Fenner as he could not in the G.P.U. and the Gestapo. People worship power in the form in which they are able to understand it. A twelve-year-old boy worships Jack Dempsey. An adolescent in a Glasgow slum worships Al Capone. An aspiring pupil at a business college worships Lord Nuffield. A New Statesman reader worships Stalin. There is a difference in intellectual maturity, but none in moral outlook. Thirty years ago the heroes of popular fiction had nothing in common with Mr. Chase's gangsters and detectives, and the idols of the English liberal intelligentsia were also comparatively sympathetic figures. Between Holmes and Fenner on the one hand, and between Abraham Lincoln and Stalin on the other, there is a similar gulf.
ellauri236.html on line 210: One ought not to infer too much from the success of Mr. Chase's books. It is possible that it is an isolated phenomenon, brought about by the mingled boredom and brutality of war. (LOL) But if such books should definitely acclimatize themselves in England (or Nigeria!), instead of being merely a half-understood import from America, there would be good grounds for dismay. In choosing Raffles as a background for No Orchids I deliberately chose a book which by the standards of its time was morally equivocal. Raffles, as I have pointed out, has no real moral code, no religion, certainly no social consciousness. All he has is a set of reflexes the nervous system, as it were, of a gentleman. Give him a sharp tap on this reflex or that (they are called ‘sport’, ‘pal’, ‘woman’, ‘king and country’ and so forth), and you get a predictable reaction. In Mr. Chase's books there are no gentlemen and no taboos. Emancipation is complete. Freud and Machiavelli have reached the outer suburbs. Comparing the schoolboy atmosphere of the one book with the cruelty and corruption of the other, one is driven to feel that snobbishness, like hypocrisy, is a check upon behaviour whose value from a social point of view has been underrated.
ellauri236.html on line 370: Chase wrote No Orchids For Miss Blandish over a period of six weekends in 1938. The novel was influenced by the American crime writer James M. Cain and the stories featured in the Pulp magazine Black Breathing Mask. Although he had never visited America, Chase reportedly wrote the book as a bet to pen a story about American gangsters that would out-do The Postman Always Rings Twice in terms of obscenity and daring.
ellauri236.html on line 378: The plan begins to fall apart when a rival mob, led by the sadistic and mentally unbalanced Slim Grisson (actually, by his Ma), finds out about Riley's plan and kidnaps Miss Blandish from the gang. Mr. Blandish pays the ransom to Slim (no no, to his Ma!), but his daughter is not returned. Slim becomes increasingly obsessed with Miss Blandish and decides to keep her hidden in a secret room inside one of his nightclubs, repeatedly raping her and lashing out at anybody who attempts to wrestle Miss Blandish from his charge.
ellauri236.html on line 382: Upon publication, the book was an instant commercial success, selling over half a million copies within five years, despite wartime pulp shortages (thanx to Finland fighting on the other side). It was also controversial, due to its violence and risqué content. In 1944, it was the subject of an essay by George Orwell in Horizon, Raffles and Miss Blandish, in which Orwell claimed that the novel bordered on the obscene.
ellauri236.html on line 392: No voihan helkutti! Ilmeisesti en jaxanut lukea kyllin pitkälle. Jäi Solakan kiihottavat puuhat Miss Imarteen huoneessa pläräämättä. Tai sitne sivut oli vaan liimantuneet kiinni. Varmaan ne british servicemenien pehmeäkantiset kappaleet oli niiltä kohin aika tahmautuneita. Näkemämme modernisoitu Phileas Fogg on juonellisesti ja näyttelijätyön osalta suunnilleen saman tasoinen, mutta jäimme siitäkin kaipaamaan oikeita obszöönejä panokohtauxia.
ellauri236.html on line 428: “I know women,” he said with a sneer. “They’d do anything to stuff their face. I feel a boner coming. Call Anna." (Anna is the big mouthed one.) “That you, Anna?” Pete asked while Eddie watched him. “This is Pete. Come here quick. Something’s come up important. I want you over here right away. No, I don’t promise it’s a blow job, but it might lead to one. You’ll come? Okay, I’m waiting for you,” and he hung up.
ellauri236.html on line 479: I will pay you three thousand dollars right now and if you find them, you’ll get a further thirty thousand dollars. That’s my proposition. What do you say?” "The F.B.I. are the best FBI in the world. If they’ve failed to find these hoods, I’ll probably fail too, but I’ll have a try.”
ellauri236.html on line 482: “She is dead. I have no doubt about that. It would be an impossible thought to think of her still alive and in the hands of such men. No, she’s dead. At least I hope so. If she isn't please make it so. I don't want back any damaged goods.” “Money is no object,” Blandish said. "Money is a subject. Women are objects.“
ellauri236.html on line 485: Captain Charles Brennan, City Police, a fat, red-faced man with blue hard eyes and sandy-colored hair, greying at the temples, reached across his desk to shake dicks with Fenner. Why do these policemen always have the same look and feel? I guess its natural selection. Chase has an unerring touch of the hackneyed and obvious.
ellauri236.html on line 516: Chase was subject to several court cases during his career. In 1942, his novel Miss Callaghan Comes to Grief (1941), a lurid account of the white slave trade, was banned by the British authorities after the author and his publisher Jarrold were found guilty of an obscene book. Each was fined a hefty £100. Later, the Anglo-American crime author Raymond Chandler proved that Chase had lifted whole sections of his work in Blonde's Requiem (published 1945) forcing Chase to issue an apology in The Bestseller.
ellauri238.html on line 77: Pena Saarikoski on kiven alla Uudessa Valamossa, sitä se yxikin obskyyri kynäilijäbändäri kävi öisin pussaamassa. Hizi kun en muista nimeä. Tero Liukkonen. On se kumma minkäläinen idoli tehtiin tästäkin juoppolallista. Mutta juoppolallejahan on monissa maissa olleet parhaat runoilijat: Li Bai, Du Fu, Anakreon, Omar Khaijam, Baudelaire, Hart Crane, Eikka Leikka, Ismo Alanko, vaikka kuinka monta muuta. Joutilaisuus tekee mestarin myös pullonkallistelussa. Pullot kalisevat, kallot pulisevat. Kaarlo Kramsu ei ollut ainoastaan juoppo, vaan myös kuppanen ja hullu. Non solum sed etiam. Hullujakin runoilijoita ym. kynäilijöitä lienee kokonainen leegio, viinahuuruisia tai muuten vaan hourulaisia. Alexis Kivi, siinä kanssa 1. Hänen loppunsa oli hyvin surkea, kuten varotteli Simo Saarikoski Pentille.
ellauri238.html on line 269: Pena ei tajunnut romaniankielisistä esitelmistä sanaakaan, ja sen vuoxi luikki mielellään Saran kanssa nussimaan. Vaimoilta ei kande tulla kyselemään runoilijan säkeiden merkitystä, ne tietää hämärien kielikuvien likaisen konkreettiset taustat. Tämä mun pitäisi ehkä kirjoittaa ylös, kuten Enola Holmes sanoisi. Hyvin päätelty Robin, ei ne ole symboliikkaa, ne on muistikuvia. Tuula-Liina ja Sarah ei päässeet jälkeenpäin vaihtamaan kokemuxia Pena-vainajasta, koska toinen ei osannut saxaa eikä toinen englantia.
ellauri238.html on line 438: Den Spuren dieser Maler*inpoet*in folgt das nach ihr benannte Literaturgeschäft, die Erinnerung an Leben und Werk dieser Ausnahmekünstler*in und Poet*in lebendig erhält. Nach ihrem Vorbild haben wir ein Netzladen aus Autor*innen, Künstler*innen, Literaturwissenschaftler*innen und –liebhaber*innen gewoben.
ellauri238.html on line 493: Sarah Kirschs Lyrik ist von hinten offen, meist ohne Reim und in freiem Versmaß. Dennoch spielt der Rhythmus im Sinne des Atemtempos eine große Rolle, ebenso Zeilenumbrüche und Zeilensprünge, durch die ein Strömen oder eine Atemlosigkeit erzeugt wird. Kirsch kombiniert häufig fachsprachliche oder altmodische Ausdrücke mit einem saloppen Ton. Als literarisches Vorbild nannte Kirsch Annette von Droste-Hülshoff, daneben ist ihr Werk durch Johannes Bobrowski und Wladimir Majakowski beeinflusst.
ellauri238.html on line 640: Sikasovinismin evoluutiobiologiaa
ellauri238.html on line 646: Ukrainalaisten laskun mukaan venäläisiä nuorukaisia on kuollut länsirintamalla jo 70K. Luku on tietysti propagandan paisuttama, mutta silti vittu. Samaa voisivat kokeilla kiinalaisetkin, joille poikien suosiminen on tuottanut aivan sikamaisen ylituotannon. Mitäpä jos otettaisiin takaisin Formosan saari jonka länkkärit niin törkeästi omivat? Siellä olisi niitä puolijohteita. Hyvin syötetyt kiinalaiset pojat ovat jo aika isoja, kazo vaikka kuvia jossa Kiinan keisari on päätä pitempi kuin länkkärien skruippanat. Paizi Trump ja sen poika, jotka antaa viirusilmille hyvän vastuxen. Let me sit on it. No let me sit on it. Lets both sit on it. This I gotta see! Hoblan mukaan ruozalaiset säästää sähköä vetämällä ulos sladdeja. Va ba? Förlåt men jag fattar inte poängen. Sladdit vaan paleltuvat talvikeleillä. Tanskandoggi sanoo mäyräkoiralle umpihangessa: Voi vinde tassut paleltuvat. "Kuono umpeen, mulla on ihan omat ongelmat", mäyräkoira ärähtää.
ellauri238.html on line 648: We express our deep respect to Karpov as a chess player. We express our deep contempt for him as a Russian and an accomplice of Putin. The mentioned match, as you probably know, was also an ideological battle (considering the status of Korchnoi and considering how opportunistic Karpov was both under the Soviet regime and under the current Russian regime). It's a pity that Korchnoi couldn't win and Fischer refused to play at all. Korchnoi jumped to our side and Fischer was an exemplary Jew.
ellauri238.html on line 650: Born in Leningrad, Soviet Union (USSR), Korchnoi defected to the Netherlands in 1976, and resided in Switzerland from 1978, becoming a Swiss citizen. Korchnoi played four matches, three of which were official, against GM Anatoly Karpov. In 1974, Korchnoi lost the Candidates Tournament final to Karpov. Karpov was declared World Champion in 1975 when GM Bobby Fischer declined to defend his title. Korchnoi then won two consecutive Candidates cycles to qualify for World Chess Championship matches with Karpov in 1978 and 1981 but lost both.
ellauri238.html on line 761: Since the 1960s, he was nominated several times for the Nobel Prize in literature. His books have been translated into 38 languages. Sodan aikana se kuului vastaritaliikkeeseen. Mihinkähän niistä? Nobel kimityxistä päätellen ei ainakaan kommunistiseen. Hyvin päätelty Robin! Herbert was educated as an economist and a lawyer. Herbert was one of the main poets of the Polish opposition to communism. Se oli porvari ties monennessa polvessa.
ellauri238.html on line 837: Wbrew powszechnej opinii nie zamieszkują go ani despoci, ani matkobójcy, ani także ci, którzy chodzá za ciałem innych. Jest to azyl artystów pełen luster, instrumentów i obrazów. Na pierwszy rzut oka najbardziej komfortowy oddział infernalny, bez smoły, ognia i tortur fizycznych.
ellauri238.html on line 841: Belzebub kocha sztukę. Chełpi się, że jego chóry, jego poeci i jego malarze prżewyzszają już prawie niebieskich. Kto ma lepszą sztukę, ma lepszy rząd - to jasne. Niedługo będą się mogli zmierzyć na Festiwalu Dwu Światów. I wtedy zobaczymy, co zostanie z Dantego, Fra Angelico i Bacha.
ellauri238.html on line 843: Belzebub popiera sztukę. Zapewnia swym artystom spokój, dobre wyżywienie i absolutną izolację od piekielnego życia.
ellauri238.html on line 860: Layle Silbert Yehuda Amichai (1924-2000) is recognized as one of Israel´s finest poets. His poems, written in Hebrew, have been translated into 40 languages (2 more than Herbert), and entire volumes of his work have been published in English, French, German, Swedish, Spanish, and Catalan. “Yehuda Amichai, it has been remarked with some justice,” according to translator Robert Alter, “is the most widely translated Hebrew poet since King David.” But boy, has he a long way to go to beat Dave.
ellauri238.html on line 865: Alter stressed it was important to remember that Amichai is not simply an Auden or a William Carlos Williams writing from right to left. Far from it! Yehuda Amichai was an Israeli poet and author, one of the first to write in colloquial Hebrew in modern times. Amichai was awarded the 1957 Shlonsky Prize, the 1969 Brenner Prize, 1976 Bialik Prize, and 1982 Israel Prize. He also won international poetry prizes, and was nominated several times for the Nobel Prize in Literature.
ellauri238.html on line 868: Autobiography in the Year 1952 Vuoden 1952 omaelämäkerta
ellauri238.html on line 916: as in the Bible story of Shechem and the sons of Jacob, kuten raamatun tarinassa Shekhemistä ja Jaakon pojista,
ellauri240.html on line 52: obalnews.ca/wp-content/uploads/2013/05/joycebrothers.jpg?quality=85&strip=all" height="250px" />
ellauri240.html on line 93: Painajainen Elm Streetillä (engl. A Nightmare on Elm Street) on yhdysvaltalainen kauhuelokuva vuodelta 1984. Elokuvan ohjasi Wes Craven ja pääosissa näyttelivät Robert Englund, Heather Langenkamp, John Saxon ja Johnny Depp. Häh? Joko taas se inhottava pikku skruippana? Sekö se oli se saxikäsi? Vai sekotanko tässä nyt 2 paljonpuhuttua kauhuleffaa toisiinsa? Ilmeisesti juu, kz. alempana.
ellauri240.html on line 97: Elokuvassa sittemmin kuuluisaksi näyttelijäksi tullut Johnny Depp teki ensimmäisen roolinsa. Elokuvan loppukohtaus ei miellyttänyt Cravenia, joka olisi halunnut hienotunteisuutta ja yleisölle enemmän pohdittavaa Nancyn ja tämän ystävien kohtalosta, minkä seurauksena hän ja tuottaja Robert Shaye riitaantuivat päätyen laihaan kompromissiratkaisuun. Aikalaisarviot olivat sille suopeita, ja The New York Times valitsi rainan vuonna 2004 yhdeksi tuhannesta kaikkien aikojen parhaasta elokuvasta. Vittu sekin kyllä todistaa jotain elokuvataiteesta.
ellauri240.html on line 105: Bullshit artist David B. Miller designed Krueger's disfigured face based on photographs of burn victims obtained from the UCLA Medical Center. The film was inspired by several newspaper articles printed in the Los Angeles Times in the 1970s about Hmong refugees, who, after fleeing to the United States because of U.S. war and genocide in Laos, Cambodia, and Vietnam, suffered disturbing nightmares and refused to sleep. Some of the men died in their sleep soon after. Medical authorities called the phenomenon Asian Death Syndrome.
ellauri240.html on line 124: Vang Pao has been widely portrayed by his Hmong supporters and the US media as an American war hero and venerated leader of the Hmong people. The former CIA chief William Colby once called him "the biggest hero of the Vietnam war". He came very close to having a park in Madison City, Wisconsin, named after him in 2002. But McCoy objected to the honouring of a man who had ordered the summary executions of prisoners and soldiers who crossed him, and accused Vang Pao of war crimes and heroin-trafficking. Five years later, Vang Pao's name was removed from a new school in Madison after opponents said it should not bear the name of a man with such a blood-stained history.
ellauri240.html on line 128: In 2007, he was arrested and charged with other Hmong leaders in federal court with conspiracy in a plot to kill communist officials in his native country. Federal prosecutors alleged the Lao liberation movement known as Neo Hom raised millions of dollars to recruit a mercenary force and conspired to obtain weapons.
ellauri240.html on line 141: Pictures of the jet and accompanying articles appeared on the front page of the Chinese daily Global Times on Wednesday. The lack of a government suppression of the disclosure lends credence to China's reports, the Associated Press reports.
ellauri240.html on line 142: The Global Times did not comment on the authenticity of the pictures, but since the government wields extensive control over state media, the report's appearance and the fact that censors have not removed images from websites suggest a calculated move to leak the information into the public sphere.
ellauri240.html on line 167: Saxikäsi Edward ystävystyy Pegin nuoren Kevin-pojan (Robert Oliveri) kanssa, ja myös Pegin aviomies Bill (Alan Arkin) lämpenee Edwardille. Myöhemmin Edward rakastuu myös Bagginsien teini-ikäiseen tyttäreen, Kimiin (Winona Ryder). Heidän ensikohtaamisensa ei kuitenkaan suju hyvin, sillä Edward hutilus onnistuu mutiloimaan telttaretkeltä kotiin palanneen Kimin tämän omassa makuuhuoneessa. Tuli tehtyä tahaton tyttöjen ympärileikkaus.
ellauri240.html on line 177: obert-englund-recibe-homenaje-del-nocturna-film-festival/1432713234594.jpg" height="200px" />
ellauri240.html on line 179: Robert Englund: "Estoy demasiado viejo para volver a ser Freddy Krueger" / Johnny Depp: "Paljonko otetaan täältä takaa"
ellauri240.html on line 213: Despite its notoriety and the large amounts of money it earned her, the book led to the ruination of Grace Metalious. She purchased a house that she had long admired in Gilmanton, then had it extensively remodeled. Meanwhile, her husband's contract with the Gilmanton school was not renewed. Officially, he was not fired, but the rumor was that the dismissal was because of his wife's book. At any rate, it made good publicity for the book. George eventually got a new job in Massachusetts, but Grace refused to leave her house. Eventually the two divorced and Grace, who had begun drinking heavily, married a local disc jockey.
ellauri240.html on line 274: Donec eris felix multos numerabis amicos. Tempora si fuerint nubila solus eris. Ante obitum nemo supremaque funera felix. Here lie I, Timon, who alive, all living men did hate, Pass by, and curse thy fill, but pass and stay not here thy gait."
ellauri240.html on line 282: Thomas Middleton (baptised 18 April 1580 – July 1627; also spelt Midleton) was an English Jacobean playwright and poet. He, with John Fletcher and Ben Jonson, was among the most successful and prolific of playwrights at work in the Jacobean period, and among the few to gain equal success in comedy and tragedy.
ellauri240.html on line 411: On se kumma miten valtion rahoilla taas ostetaan jotain taytta soopaa. Otavan pojat tai joku muu varmaan lahjonut pikkuisen, eikun lobannut kai on se lahjonnan sijaan kaytettava sana. Jotain vilunkia pakko olla, terveela jarjella tata ei voi selittaa. Eika tietenkaan kotimasita kirjailijaa tueta, vana nigerialasiamerikkalaista. Oishan meilla ollut vaikka naa Mielensapahoittaja-kirjat. Mitapa sita omia verorahoja kotimaiseen... Ja jos kirjan nimessa on feminismi-sana tasa-arvon sijasta niin se pitaisi laittaa roskakoppaan jos en takia. Tama sitä monimuotoisuutta on. Toivottavasti joku saa potkut. (👍 Hyvin sanottu: 10)
ellauri240.html on line 489: “Cynicism is a disease that robs people of the gift of life.” – Rainn Wilson
ellauri240.html on line 494: Rainn Dietrich Wilson. (s. 20. tammikuuta 1966 Seattle, Washington), hän on yhdysvaltalainen näyttelijä. Hänet tunnetaan parhaiten roolistaan Dwight Schrutena televisiosarjan Konttori yhdysvaltalaisessa versiossa. Hän ei saanut tähtiosaa, eikä sivuosastakaan Emmyä. Hän tuli tähtien shakkiottelussa toisexi. Outside of acting, Wilson published an autobiography, The Bassoon King, in 2015, and co-founded the digital media company SoulPancake in 2008. In 2022, On November 10, 2022, Wilson changed his name on social media to Rainnfall Heat Wave Rising Sea Levels Wilson in an effort to raise awareness about climate change, though he did not legally change his name.
ellauri240.html on line 502: Our decade-plus of award-winning content spans digital, television, branded, and live engagements, with hits such as Street Stunts for Oprah´s Super Soul Sunday, Kid President, My Last Days, Science of Happiness, Tell My Story, and more. In 2016 SoulPancake joined the Participant family, with like-minded visions of making the world a better place through thoughtful, inspiring content. As one unified voice under the Participant brand, we are building a global community using storytelling as the vehicle to reimagine better futures of peace and prosperity for all, and cultivating pathways for our audiences to create real world impact. And to sell maximum number of MeUndies on the side.
ellauri240.html on line 515: Luulin että Hoblan russofobinen Anna Lena Laurén oli tapaus sinänsä. Väärin luultu. Urhean Ilta-Pulun Arja Paanasen pääkirjoitus on vielä hurjempaa haukanlentoa:
ellauri241.html on line 47: Fanny's flirtatious personality contrasts with Keats' notably more aloof nature. She begins to pursue him after her siblings Samuel and Toots obtain his book of poetry, "Endymion". Her efforts to interact with the poet are fruitless until he witnesses her grief for the loss of his brother, Tom. Keats begins to open up to her advances while spending Christmas with the Brawne family. He begins giving her poetry lessons, and it becomes apparent that their attraction is mutual. Fanny is nevertheless troubled by his reluctance to pursue her, on which her mother (Kerry Fox) surmises, "Mr. Keats knows he cannot like you, he has no living and no income."
ellauri241.html on line 62: Lamia (/ˈleɪmiə/; Kreikka: Λάμια), muinaisessa kreikkalaisessa mytologiassa, oli lapsia syövä hirviö, ja myöhemmässä perinteessä sitä pidettiin eräänlaisena yöllä ahdistavana henkenä (daemon, succubus). Varhaisimmissa tarinoissa Lamia oli kaunis muinaisen Libyan kuningatar, jolla oli suhde Zeuksen kanssa. Tämän oppimisen jälkeen Zeuksen vaimo Hera ryösti Lamialta lapsensa, Zeus-suhteensa jälkeläiset, joko sieppaamalla tai tappamalla heidät. Hänen lastensa menetys ajoi Lamian hulluksi, ja kostoksi ja epätoivoksi Lamia nappasi kaikki löytämänsä lapset ja söi heidät suihinsa. Julmien tekojensa vuoksi hänen fyysinen ulkonäkönsä muuttui rumaksi ja hirvittäväksi kuin isovenäläisillä. Zeus antoi Lamialle profetian voiman ja kyvyn ottaa pois ja palauttaa silmänsä, mahdollisesti siksi, että Hera kirosi hänet unettomuudesta tai koska hän ei enää voinut sulkea silmiään, niin että hänen oli pakko aina obsessata kadonneista lapsistaan.
ellauri241.html on line 155: Deaf to his throbbing throat's long, long melodious moan. Kuurona hänen sykkivän kurkkunsa pitkälle melodiselle voihkeelle.
ellauri241.html on line 156: I dreamt I saw thee, robed in purple flakes, Näin unta, et näin sinut kaurahiutaleisiin pukeutuneena,
ellauri241.html on line 218: Her fearful sobs, self-folding like a flower pelokkaita nyyhkytyksiään, suppuun sulkeutuvia kuin kukka,
ellauri241.html on line 266: pWhile her robes flaunted with the daffodils. Samaan aikaan kun hänen kaapunsa leijui narsissien kanssa.
ellauri241.html on line 348: To thy far wishes will thy streams obey: Kaukaisia toiveitasi sinun purot tottelevat:
ellauri241.html on line 394: Than throbbing blood, and that the self-same pains kuin sykkivä veri (ja lymfaneste tietysti) ja että samat kivut
ellauri241.html on line 453: Slow-stepp'd, and robed in philosophic gown: hidas askel ja pukeutunut filosofiseen pukuun:
ellauri241.html on line 617: Of palm and plantain, met from either side, palmua ja jauhobanaania, kohosi molemmilta puolilta,
ellauri241.html on line 619: Two palms and then two plantains, and so on, Kaksi kämmentä ja sitten kaksi jauhobanaania ja niin edelleen,
ellauri241.html on line 652: As though some knotty problem, that had daft Ikään kuin jokin visainen ongelma, joka oli sotkenut
ellauri241.html on line 679: On libbard's paws, upheld the heavy gold Leobardin tassuilla kannattivat
ellauri241.html on line 680: Of cups and goblets, and the store thrice told kuppien ja pikarien raskasta kultaa, ja kauppa kertoi kolmesti
ellauri241.html on line 691: In white robes, and themselves in order placed he kaikki siirtyivät juhlijat valkoisissa kaapuissa, ja tärkeysjärjestyksessä aseteltuin
ellauri241.html on line 774: Lamia, no longer fair, there sat a deadly white. Lamia, ei enää reilu, siellä istui kuin kobra vanha valkoinen.
ellauri241.html on line 810: And, in its marriage robe, the heavy body wound. ja sen hääpuvussa oli raskas ruumiinhaava. Kannattiko hei Apollonios?
ellauri241.html on line 978: A venerable priestess full soberly,
ellauri241.html on line 1018: Dolphins bob their noses through the brine:
ellauri241.html on line 1022: And the frantic "gape" of lonely Niobe,
ellauri241.html on line 1029: Turn their steps towards the sober ring
ellauri241.html on line 1088: Of high and noble life with thoughts so sick?
ellauri241.html on line 1255: (I am referring to your boobs of course)
ellauri241.html on line 1299: — Hereat, with many sobs, her gentle strife
ellauri241.html on line 1434: Echo into oblivion, he said:—
ellauri241.html on line 1606: Thy venom'd goblet will we quaff until
ellauri241.html on line 1645: The poem has been criticized for its inconsistencies and its somewhat disappointing conclusion. Seems Keaz whisked the guy away at the end quickly before he could get into any more mischief. He was probably thoroughly fed up with him. But then again Jack was just 22. Endymion presents many problems to its interpreters, as it did to Jack himself. Critics have, however, been able to agree that the poem contains considerable eroticism.
ellauri242.html on line 66: Miten noi kirjailijaspuget jaxoivat kaiket päivät istuxia Hansassa? Se oli kuin joku viinanhajuinen avokonttori. Ja mixi koko aika pitää olla kännissä? Jotta izekritiikki saadaan vaiennetuxi. Amokissa Jorma sanoo mielipiteenään että Saarikosken Kirje vaimolleni oli hyvä kirja. Jorma ruikkasi 1. tyttöystävänsä Veijan kerrasta paxuxi ja karkasi merille. Ei vetänyt ulos kyllin ripeästi. Vaimonsa Sinikan siellä Jorma oli turvonnut ja kova. Hannu Salama kiskoi kusen kyllästämällä kyrvällä urheasti kitkerään loppuun saakka. Krapula-aamuina oli kaverien kunto kyllä surkea. Kirjan nimi Amok saattaa viitata Amos Anderssoniin, sillä Hoblan talo näkyi Hansan ikkunasta.
ellauri242.html on line 85: Adam Gottlob Oehlenschläger (14. marraskuuta 1779 – 20. tammikuuta 1850) oli tanskalainen kirjailija ja vuodesta 1810 Kööpenhaminan yliopiston estetiikan professori.
ellauri242.html on line 109: Efter at have gjort tjeneste som ridder i Tyskland vender Axel tilbage til hoffet i Nidaros, hvor han vil fri til sin elskede Valborg og blive væbner for kongen. Imidlertid begærer kongen selv Valborg, og desuden går kirken imod en forbindelse mellem Axel og Valborg, da de er nære beslægtede (søskende). Imidlertid har Axel et pavebrev, der tilsyneladende rydder problemerne af vejen, og der sættes gang i forberedelserne af brylluppet. Under selve vielsen sår munken Knud tvivl om pavebrevets gyldighed, og parret skilles uden stor patos, inden Valborg tvinges i kloster. Det lykkes Axel og Valborg at flygte, men Axel må gå i kamp for kongen, og i denne såres han dødeligt, hvorpå Valborgs hjerte brister, da hun sidder med Axels døde krop.
ellauri243.html on line 88: Elokuva oli kaupallinen menestys ja se tuotti 321 miljoonaa dollaria lipputuloja maailmanlaajuisesti. Se sai monia palkintoja ja ehdokkuuksia mukaan lukien kahdeksan Oscar-ehdokkuutta muun muassa parhaasta elokuvasta, ohjauksesta ja alkuperäisestä käsikirjoituksesta. Waltz voitti Hans Landan roolistaan parhaan miespääosan palkinnon Cannesin elokuvajuhlilla, sekä parhaan miessivuosan Oscar-, Bafta-, SAG- ja Golden Globe -palkinnot.
ellauri243.html on line 127: Battle Mountain, Nevada could have been battle-torn Iraq ot Afganistan, but it wasn't, it was just America recently robbed from the Indians.
ellauri243.html on line 135: Nevada is home to a number of federal reservations and colonies. The major tribes are the Washouts, Northern Paiute, Southern Paiute, and Western Shoeshines. Many have been hit disproportionately hard by the coronavirus and may have pre-existing health conditions or live in remote areas with limited access to medical care. In the Reno-Sparks Indian Colony, a clever color-coded card system was set up for people to signal from their windows for help with a health issue, food shortage, or other problem.
ellauri243.html on line 137: Compared with other U.S. races, American Indians have a life expectancy that is shorter than five years. The suicide rate among American Indian youth is 2.5 times higher than among youth in the rest of the country. American Indians are 2.5 times more likely to experience violent crimes than the national average, and more than four out of five American Indian women will experience parking meter violation in their lifetimes. Holy shit, these issues can be seen as symptoms of several larger issues, including access to social services, educational opportunities, nutritional food, and health care, and just plain old laziness and stupidity. Property rights pose more significant problems, insomuch as residents who don’t have deeds to the land on which they live struggle to build credit, which throws a significant barrier in front of upward mobility. Meanwhile, tribal lands are tough sells for franchises and other commercial developers that would bring jobs to reservations, as these companies are often resistant to negotiating contract terms under tribal law. So it's really all their own fault, them not playing along with good old free enterprise and private property!
ellauri243.html on line 143: Kun häly käy Brad sonnustautuu battle-leninkiin ja huomioliiveihin. Jalassa on mustat nahka combat boots. Batman ja Robin säntäävät batmobiiliin jona toimii Jeep Patriot. One of the most amazing battle machines ever built.
ellauri243.html on line 146: The little community of Battle Mountain and its mysterious underground base of hobbits went almost completely unnoticed by the rest of the world...
ellauri243.html on line 151: Even during the deep global economic recession that began in 2008, Battle Mountain grew, although the community around it barely noticed. Because of its isolation and dirt-low cost of living, many bases around the world were closed and relocated to Battle Mountain. Soon Battle Mountain Air Reserve Base became JAB (Joint Air Base) Battle Mountain, hosting hot air units from all the military services, the Air Reserve Forces, the Central Intelligence Agency, and even the Space Defense Force and the Death Planet.
ellauri243.html on line 161: Two clicheed beefy thick-necked high school boys, followed by the statutory obese wimp, love to serve as volunteer firemen. Maybe we get to see the victims! Beats licking Marina's ice cream cone. The guy with the smaller head could not even read.
ellauri243.html on line 171: 1. Anaconda 2. Baloney pony 3. Birdie 4. Bobby 5. Boonga 6. Cack 7. Choad 8. Choda 9. Chode 10. Chopper 11. Cock 12. Crank 13. Custard launcher 14. Dick 15. Dicklet 16. Diddly 17. Dingaling 18. Ding-a-ling 19. Ding-dong 20. Dinger 21. Dingle 22. Dingus 23. Dingy 24. Dink 25. Dinkle 26. Dipstick 27. Dirk 28. Disco stick 29. Dog bone 30. Dong 31. Donger 32. Donkey Kong 33. Doodle 34. Dork 35. Down 36. Fire hose 37. Fuckpole 38. Gherkin 39. Hairy canary 40. Hammer 41. Hot rod 42. Hooter 43. Jade stalk 44. Jamoke 45. Jigger 46. Jimmy 47. Jock 48. Johnson 49. John Thomas 50. Joystick 51. Kielbasa 52. Knob 53. Lad 54. Langer 55. Lingam 56. Love muscle 57. Love stick 58. Love truncheon 59. Machine 60. Master John Goodfellow 61. Male member 62. Manhood 63. Maypole 64. Meat 65. Meat puppet 66. Meat rod 67. Meatstick 68. Meat stick 69. Member 70. Membrum virile 71. Nature’s scythe 72. Old chap 73. One-eyed trouser snake 74. Organ 75. Package 76. Pecker 77. Peen 78. Pee-pee 79. Pee-wee 80. Pego 81. Penis 82. Peter 83. Phallus 84. Pickle 85. Piece 86. Pike 87. Pingas 88. Pink cigar 89. Pintle 90. Pipe 91. Pisser 92. Pizzle 93. Plonker 94. Pork sword 95. Prick 96. Pud 97. Putz 98. P-word 99. Python 100. Ramrod 101. Rape tool 102. Rod 103. Root 104. Rutter 105. Salami 106. Sausage 107. Schlong 108. Schmuck 109. Sex tool 110. Shaft 111. Shlong 112. Shmekl 113. Skin flute 114. Snake 115. Snausage 116. Spitstick 117. Stretcher 118. Swipe 119. Tadger 120. Tagger 121. Tail 122. Tallywacker 123. Tarse 124. Thing 125. Thingy 126. Third leg 127. Todger 128. Tool 129. Trouser monkey 130. Trouser snake 131. Truncheon 132. Tube steak 133. Unit 134. Virile member 135. Wang 136. Weapon 137. Wee-wee 138. Weenie 139. Weeny 140. Whang 141. Wick 142. Widgie 143. Widdler 144. Wiener 145. Willie 146. Willy 147. Wingwang 148. Winkle 149. Winky 150. Yard 151. Ying-yang 152. January Nelson.
ellauri243.html on line 173: All The Slang Ways To Say Blowjob
ellauri243.html on line 175: The medical community calls it “fellatio,” but the rest of us have our own phrases for performing oral sex on a man. The below is a comprehensive list of slang alternatives to “blowjob.” Some of these phrases are politically incorrect and other are completely ridiculous. Regardless, they exist in the collective lexicon. Here they are!
ellauri243.html on line 177: 1. Addressing the court 2. BJ 3. Bagpiping 4. Basket lunch 5. Beej 6. Blowie 7. Blowing the love whistle 8. Bobbing for apples 9. Bone-lipping 10. Buccal onanism 11. Brentwood hello 12. Charming the snake 13. Climbing the corporate ladder 14. Cock-gobbling 15. Copping a doodle 16. Courting the gay vote 17. Drinking a slurpee 18. Dropping on it 19. Earning your keep 20. Essin’ the dee 21. Face-frosting 22. Fellatio 23. Fluting 24. French abortion 25. Gator mouth 26. Getting a facial 27. Getting a lewinsky 28. Getting a throat culture 29. Getting to the cream filling 30. Giving cone 31. Giving face 32. Giving head 33. Gobbling pork 34. Going down 35. Gumming the root 36. Punching 37. Giving Big Jim and the twins a bath 38. Giving brain 39. Giving head 40. Gum-rooting 41. Gumming the green bean 42. Head job 43. Honkin’ bobo 44. Huffing bone 45. Hummer 46. Interrogating the prisoner 47. Kneeling at the altar 48. Knob job 49. Larking 50. Laying some lip 51. Licking the lollipop 52. Making mouth music 53. Making the blind see 54. Meeting with Mr. One-Eye 55. Mouth-fucking 56. Mouth-holstering the nightstick 57. Mouth-milking 58. Mouth-to-junk resuscitation 59. Opening wide for Dr. Chunky 60. Oral sodomy 61. Peeling the banana 62. Penilingus 63. Piston job 64. Playing pan’s pipes 65. Playing the pink oboe 66. Playing the skin flute 67. Pole-smoking 68. Polishing the trailer hitch 69. Pricknicking 70. Protein milkshake 71. Receiving holy communion 72. Respecting your superiors 73. Sampling the sausage 74. Scooby-snacking 75. Secretarial duties 76. Singing to the choir 77. Skull-buggery 78. Skull-fucking 79. Slobbin’ the knob 80. Smiling at Mr. Winky 81. Smoking the pink pipe 82. Smoking pole 83. Southern France 84. Speaking into the bonophone 85. Speaking low genitals 86. Spit-shining a baseball bat 87. Spraying the tonsils 88. Sucking off 89. Sucky-ducky 90. Suck-starting the Harley 91. Swallowing the baloney pony 92. Sword-wwallowing 93. Taking one’s temp with a meat thermometer 94. Talking into the mic 95. Telling it to the judge 96. Waxing the carrot 97. Worshiping at the altar 98. Wringing it dry 99. Yaffling the yogurt cannon 100. Zipper dinner
ellauri243.html on line 186: 100 Different Slang Phrases For Giving a Lick Job
ellauri243.html on line 211: In addition to its prior history as an American symbol, the rattlesnake was seen at the time in Gadsden's birthplace of Charleston, South Carolina as a "noble and useful" animal that gave warning before it attacked.
ellauri243.html on line 290: celebrities are getting divorced?” then you should probably bookmark this.
ellauri243.html on line 410: ilta-putinin-rakastajatar Monday, October 4, 2021 - 10:51pm. Finland -
ellauri243.html on line 413: Monday, October 4, 2021 - 10:51pm. Finland - Vladimir Putinin kanssa
ellauri243.html on line 452: mobile.twitter.com › iltalehti_fi Putinin väitetty rakastajatar kommentoi
ellauri243.html on line 516: Robert Dale Brown is a boxer, who represented Canada at the 1992 Summer Olympics in Barcelona, Spain. There he was stopped in the second round of the light heavyweight division by Germany’s Torsten May. Beginning in 2001, he collaborated with fellow author Jim DeFelice on the Dreamland series of books. Oops, nyt tuli sanottua se mitä ei olisi saanut sanoa. (Lea majalla tyytyväisen näköisenä.)
ellauri243.html on line 531: When an almost-forgotten enemy prepares a shock attack on America, only one man can see it coming. Stuck in a desk job in Air Force Intelligence, the high-adrenalin
ellauri243.html on line 538: FBI bird on pitempi kuin Pat ja sen avonainen pusero korostaa nätisti sen tissejä. Se puristaa Pättiä (kädestä) hirmu kovasti. Her job was to bat her eyes and shake her ass at suspects, but sadly, old Pat had lost his sense of touch. But beefy Brad is casting glances at her cleavage. Brad's eyes follow Cassandra's fan as she waddles back across the hangar. He has his seed bags hitched up and his pink torpedo all armed up for rapid deployment. Musta leski Cassandra valmistautuu nielemään sen hook, line and sinker. "Dreamer" January Nelsonia lainataxemme (yllä): get ready for suck-starting the Harley, swallowing the baloney pony, taking her temp with a meat thermometer.
ellauri243.html on line 540: Seuraavaxi nähdään kuinka 2 urheaa robopatrioottia, Roger nimisiä molemmat, urheilee etänä romukasassa. Kärzääntyneen pahan syöpäkääryleen DNA on liimautunut robon haarniskaan. Ja sitten tulee luku jonka mottona on "I dont think change is stressful. I think failure is stressful." signed, Bob Stearns! Loppu negatiivisille spiraaleille nyt! Mutta kuka monista Bob Stearnseista on kymysyxessä?
ellauri243.html on line 542: Tämmönen Bob Stearns kuoli hiljattain. Robert "Bob" H. Stearns, Columbia, SC * December 9, 1936 + January 5, 2023. Tämä Bob kyllä piti lentokoneista. He had a lifelong love affair with airplanes and flying, owned a half dozen aircraft and enjoyed meeting up with his flying buddies, meticulously restoring vintage aircraft and going to fly-ins. His health eventually clipped his wings, and after that he turned his attention to volunteering at Riverbanks Zoo and nurturing a latent talent for painting, which was discovered after Bob and Marge moved to Stilled Hopes.
ellauri243.html on line 544: Mutta kehtaisiko Dale siteerata mottona noin tavan tallaajaa? Seuraava Bob Stearns olis ainakin jonkinlainen motivationaalinen spiikkeri:
ellauri243.html on line 546:
ellauri243.html on line 547: Bob at his most motivational in this video about Perp Potential.
ellauri243.html on line 550: Bob Stearns, CEO of Powerful Potential. BOB STEARNS is one of only 95 people in history to lead an organization to win the prestigious Malcolm Baldrige Award. He was the Leader and Architect of Pittsburgh based Medrad’s 2003 journey to win the prestigious award. Medrad won the Baldrige award again in 2010. The Baldrige Award is presented annually by the President of the United States to organizations that excel in seven categories, including results. As Chief Human Resources Officer of CoManage, Bob led that company to be named the Best Place to Work in Pa.” He has also received the American Society for Training and Development Award for Excellence. Bob has served as a Director on the Boards of National Church Solutions, The Orchards at Foxcrest, the Pa. Society of Association Executives, the Pa. Association of Non Profit Organizations and a Woman owned business through Powerlink and Seton Hill University. Bob has owned and been the CEO of PowerfulPotential since 1985.
ellauri243.html on line 552: Bob’s book which is titled” Perhaps a Man Can Change the Stars” is the basis for today’s program. He is a sought after Inspirational Speaker, having spoken in eight countries. He just launched a Nationwide Speaking Tour to share the messages from his book with as many people as he can.
ellauri243.html on line 554: Bob´s book is about Perpetual Potential. Inside these pages, you will discover three invaluable lessons that will propel you closer to your true potential. The lessons will serve you well on either of two different, but parallel roads you may travel: The roads towards triumph or tragedy, as well as the roads in between. In 2003 the author, Bob Stearns was on top of the world. He led his company to win the most prestigious business award in the country, the Malcolm Baldrige award. Just five short years later, tragedy struck. Bob´s oldest son Eric was killed while on a study trip abroad in Athens, Greece. Eric was 21 years old at the time and was a junior at Penn State University. Although Eric lost his precious life in Greece, he found something sprawled under the pillars of the Acropolis that many people search for their entire lifetimes. He found inner peace in the knowledge that he could truly be anything he wanted to be, he could do anything he wanted to with his life. In his book "Perhaps a Man Can Change the Stars - Eric's Pursuit of Perpetual Potential", Bob shares with you three life lessons that allowed Eric to understand his true potential. Those same lessons helped Bob and his family deal with Eric´s death. The same lessons had enabled Bob to lead his company to triumph five years earlier. A key take away from the book is that no matter what stage of life you find yourself, you have the potential to explore. You have the potential to utilize and grow the talents and aspirations that you currently have. You have the potential to rekindle old talents that lie dormant, and to allow new talents to blossom. This is true regardless of age, circumstances, and what other people may be telling us. So read, explore and think deeply about how you can apply the three lessons that Bob learned from Eric. Decide for yourself how you can best use them. Indeed, our Potential is Perpetual!
ellauri243.html on line 581: "Herra on puhunut" oli prof. Aamoksen suosikki. Aamos päättää profetiakirjansa viimeiseen näkyyn Herrasta, joka seisoo alttarin vieressä ja käskee tuhota temppelin ja tappaa kaikki ihmiset. Tuomion sanoma - jota opetetaan koko kirjassa - saavuttaa huipentuman tässä viimeisessä luvussa. Pakotietä ei ole. Kaikki, jotka hylkäsivät Herran, tuhotaan. sanoo Herra, sinun Jumalasi. Herra on puhunut. Ugh. (Hyi.) Aamos päättää ankaran tuomion kirjansa tähän viimeiseen toivon sanomaan. Daavidin dynastia palautetaan kirkkaudella ja hän näyttää Herran muille kansoille. Heidän satonsa on runsasta, heidän kaupunkinsa asutetaan uudelleen ja he korjaavat palkkionsa rauhassa. Jumala istuttaa heidät heidän maalleen, jotta he eivät enää koskaan kärsisi menetyksiä. Huomaa, että nämä Aamoksen lupaukset ovat vielä edessä. Herran suu on puhunut (Jes. 1:20, käärien sen:) "Hän täyttää vielä sinun suusi naurulla" (Job 8:21)
ellauri243.html on line 626: We all have dreams. The people who accomplish their dreams don´t just dream, though. They create processes. They build systems. They establish routines that keep them on track and ensure they reach their ultimate goal. Oddly enough, they (unlike pilots) don´t obsess over their goals. They obsess over their processes, because greatness results partly from inspiration but mostly from consistent, relentless effort.
ellauri243.html on line 632: "Lose 10 pounds in 30 days" is a specific, objective, and most critically, measurable goal. You know exactly what you want to accomplish, which means you can create a process designed to get you there. You can create a solid diet plan. You can create an effective workout plan.
ellauri243.html on line 635: Or say you want to grow your business. "Increase revenue" sounds great but is too vague. "Land five new customers this month" is specific, objective, and measurable. You know exactly what you want to accomplish, which means you can create a process designed to get you there.
ellauri243.html on line 674: Mises tervehtii meitä Ukrainasta, Punaparran porukat oli ryssistä ja Puolasta. Rockwellit on ökyrikkaita Bostonilaisia jotka tekee työttömiä robotiikalla. Puolueen perustaminen johtui osittain huolista Nixonin hallinnosta, Vietnamin sodasta, asevelvollisuudesta ja fiat-rahojen käyttöönotosta. Fiat-raha on eräänlainen valuutta, jota ei tueta hyödykkeellä, kuten kullalla tai hopealla. Liikkeeseenlaskijahallitus on vaan nimennyt sen lailliseksi maksuvälineeksi. Nykyaikana fiat-raha on ihan normia.
ellauri243.html on line 680: Mises kirjoitti ja vittuili laajasti klassisesta liberalismista. Hän kannatti täysin vapaata markkinataloutta ja vähimmäistä yövartijavaltiota. Misesillä oli ratkaiseva vaikutus oppilaaseensa Friedrich von Hayekiin, joka sai sittemmin taloustieteen Nobel-palkinnon (no tietysti) ja tunnettiin myös liberalismia puolustavana kirjailijana ja filosofina. Hayek on sanonut kääntyneensä sosialismista liberalismiin parikymmenvuotiaana 1920-luvulla nimenomaan opettajansa Misesin teosten Liberalismi ja Sosialismi ansiosta.
ellauri243.html on line 688: Muistutan lukijoita, että Yhdysvallat ei ollut mukana Minskin neuvotteluissa. Toisaalta se vastusti jyrkästi kaikkia sovintoratkaisuja joko Venäjän tai irtautuneiden alueiden kanssa. Toisaalta ei ollut mitään järkeä kutsua Yhdysvaltoja Minskiin, koska sen asema oli ilmeinen ja sen läsnäolo olisi haitallista. Järkyttävää, OK Mutta Poroshenko oli pomppinut makeismagnaatti, joka johti villisti vastuutonta, raivokkaasti russofobista hallintoa, joka oli kaapannut vallan Kiovassa. Joten: Järkyttävää, mutta myös sopusoinnussa kulmakarvoja myöten korruptoituneiden mitättömyyxien käytökseen, jolla ei ole minkäänlaista käsitystä tai huomioita valtiovallan tai vastuullisen hallinnon suhteen.
ellauri243.html on line 701: Whoever tales most chesspieces off the board wins a Baskin Robbins certificate. This is not war its a game. Roxanne was already ignoring the senior beside her. Grabbing the wrong trackball, she won´t win the certificate!
ellauri243.html on line 722: Disraeli arranged for the British to purchase a major interest in the Suez Canal Company in Egypt. In 1878, faced with Russian victories against the Ottomans, he worked at the Congress of Berlin to obtain peace in the Balkans at terms favourable to Britain and unfavourable to Russia, its longstanding enemy. This diplomatic victory over Russia established Disraeli as one of Europe´s leading statesmen.
ellauri243.html on line 730: Endymion is very like Benjy´s autobiography, with his boring English politics woven into the thread of the story. The action and conversations are distributed between characters who had figured in English politics and the fashionable romances of Europe during the last forty years.
ellauri243.html on line 732: Endymion is Disraeli in his youth except in the story he is a true-blood British aristocrat. Zenobia, a queen of fashion, is based on his Lady Blessington with a combination of some other great lady. She was Benjamin Disraeli´s first great patroness, who opened the avenue of his wonderful career. Zenobia later retires to the background to give place to Lady Montfort. She is a combination of Lady Blessington and Mrs. Wyndham Lewis (the latter Disraeli married) so we have in Lady Montfort at once the patroness and the wife. It would be interesting to know if the rabbis got to cut Benjy´s prepuce before the falling-out with the synagogue? Maybe that is what the fight was all about?
ellauri243.html on line 734: St Barbe, the journalist in " Endymion " is an intended caricature of Thackeray, and Gushy is Dickens. Vigo, a minor character of the novel, is a combination of Poole, the tailor, and George Hudson, the Sunderland railway king, as he was styled in his time. Prince Florestan is probably a sketch of Louis Napoleon in his early days in England. He is constantly presented as a child of destiny wailing for the European revolution of ´48 to give him back his throne.
ellauri243.html on line 736: Job Thornberry comes into the story with the Anti-Corn-Law League, representing the remarkable change in English politics from the time before Napoleonic wars when the 10% richest guys were local landowners to after the wars when the merchants and industrialists had become the nobs (am. head honchos). This change of mens of production necessitated the passage of Reform Bills that favored Millian laissez-faire by the Conservative Derby-Disraeli ministries. Job Thornberry may be Richard Cobden; for he certainly has much of Cobden´s subject in him. The energetic and capable minister Lord Roehampton is taken to be Lord Palmerston, and Count Ferrol is perhaps Bismarck. Neuchatel, the great banker, is the historical Rothschild; Cardinal Henry Edward Manning figures as the tendentious papist Nigel Penruddock.
ellauri243.html on line 764: Epilogiin mahtuu vielä putinisti-assassiinien kylmäveristä mutta kuumaveristä ruttausta ylivoimaisissa teris asuissa. Bradista se on mukavaa, kuin peliä. Patrik tulee ulos piilosta ja kiittelee: Good Job, boys, good Job. Siinä kaikki Dalelta tällä kertaa. Mutta Patrik razastaa seuraavassa numerossa taas Nevadan tulenhehkuisen taivaan alla. Te mukana!
ellauri244.html on line 112: Anja Kauranen 26 ja Harri Sirola 22 styylasivat vuonna 1980-81. Yllättävän vanhoina, Sonjakin oli jo elävän leski. Tyrnävä Anja oli Harria 4v vanhempi. Ällöttävä 80-luku oli alussa. Me mentiin naimisiin sinä kesänä ja lähdettiin Bostoniin, vältyttiin koko sirkuxesta. Molemmat on syntyneet toukokuussa. Anja on iältään Petterin ja mun puolivälissä. Aika vanha korppu sekin kolho pullanaama siis jo on. Harri oli hintelähkö kurnusimppu, Anja hukkapätkä mutta isoluinen. Yhdestä asiasta emme tingi - bob-pokkareihin valitaan vain parhaat. Eka painos ilmestyi 1996, toinen 2016 kirjasta tehdyn leffan siivellä. Silloin Harri oli hienontunut metrojunan pyörissä jo 15v, se teki henkkoht ratkaisun 2001 elokuussa WTC tornien kaatumista odotellessa.
ellauri244.html on line 122: Sukupolvi ylösalas pogoomista, Sex pistolsia, E.Saarisen leobardihousuja. Mitä sukupolvi, pari vuottahan noi muodit kesti. Filosofian laitoxelle kokoonnuttiin miettimään voisiko akateeminen ja punkki hedelmällisesti kohdata. Ämmämäistä sievistelyä, 1. polven sivistyneistöä. Kuka kielsi punkin? Ei Kokoomus vaan Platon! Olli hihkui. Kuka vitun Olli? No tietysti Eski Saarinen.
ellauri244.html on line 188: Joseph Butler is best known for his criticisms of the hedonic and egoistic “selfish” theories associated with Hobbes and Bernard Mandeville and for his positive arguments that self-love and conscience are not at odds if properly understood (and indeed promote and sanction the same actions). In addition to his importance as a moral philosopher Butler was also an influential Anglican theologian.
ellauri244.html on line 193: Keith Butler exposed! Bishop Butler and his wife live at the moment in a $1.3 million home in Troy, Michigan, for which they paid cash. In fact, over the last couple decades he has owned some 20 properties, almost all of them paid for in cash. They own several homes at the moment. Like other Word of Faith ministers like Robert Tilton, Butler preaches the "prosperity gospel", constantly browbeating their followers to "sow the seed of prosperty" by giving money to the church, which will supposedly be returned to them a hundred fold. They preach that godliness leads to wealth, thus stigmatizing the poor - if you aren't rich, you obviously just don't have enough faith or aren't a good enough Christian. This is pretty much a sure sign that you're dealing with a huckster.
ellauri244.html on line 203: Kasarisukupolvi sai lahjaxi meedian ja markkinavoimat. Niin voi hyvin sanoa. Punk on vitunmoinen haaste muzin ompelukorille, lisäsi Harri muzin ompelukorista löytyneet hakaneulat ozarivassaan. Muzin ompelukorin on nyt korvannut verkkokaupan ostoskori. On aika valittaa ja aika pogoilla, huudahtivat kiimaiset virheet ja pogosivat kolera-altaaseen kuin Ullanlinnan tumpelo murhaaja Bob.
ellauri244.html on line 316: Helsingissä ei saanut ennen kerjätä, ei loiteroida, kusta porttikonkeihin ja postiluukkuihin, ajella jalkakäytävillä potkulaudoilla, tuherrella seinille. Ennen oli kaikki paremmin. Music TV oli ällö amerikkalainen kexintö, talouslipilaarien ja globalisaattoreiden propagandakanava. Sitäkään nää pogoääliöt ei tajua. Hyi helvetti.
ellauri244.html on line 495: Revenge ois niinkö meikkimerkki. Liikemiehet näyttää himokkailta muttei me niille anneta, vaan vain toisillemme, haistelemme vuoronperään pilluja. Markkinointi ja PR on peitenimiä mainostuxelle. Tärkeintä on lompakon eikä munan koko. Pienellä hopeamunallakin pötkii pitkälle. Oikeassa valossa näytetään vieläkin kaxikymppisiltä. Jokainen tahtoo maxaa takaisin, paizi Jeesus. Tai hetkinen? Jeesushan juuri lupaa maxaa puolestamme Jumalalle takaisin, potut pottuina! Kyltää markkinataloudellinen korvausperiaate taitaa siinäkin olla pätevä! Mies panee haisemaan empimättä hetkenkään, ja Jeesushan on mies? No eräänlainen mies. Ei tosin puolixikaan yhtä sexikäs kuin 25-vuotias tottelevainen tatuoitu Robin. Pöh, Robin on tytön nimi.
ellauri244.html on line 498: Aika narsistinen kuvaus klimakteeriselta Camillalta, eikö vaan? Se täytti 45 tässä vaiheessa. Vielä Robinin poikamiespoxista lähtiessä pitää kertaalleen seinää vasten nussia. Camilla oli unohtanut miten nopeasti nuoret pojat latautuvat. Se nauroi tullessaan ja vielä kovempaa lähtiessään.
ellauri244.html on line 511: Harry kjente det rykke til et sted. Bra jobba, Kaja!
ellauri244.html on line 541: Jöns antoi meille lahjaxi Tracy Chapmanin ekan älppärin jossa oli raita Fast Car. " Fast Car " is a song by American singer-songwriter Tracy Chapman. It was released on April 6, 1988, as the lead single from her 1988 self-titled debut studio album. Chapman's appearance on the Nelson Mandela 70th Birthday Tribute helped the song become a top-ten hit in the United States, reaching number six on the Billboard Hot 100. Tracy is 54 years Nelson's junior. Bra jobba, Tracy!
ellauri244.html on line 593: Here in my opinion is the only imaginative prose-writer of the slightest value who has appeared among the English-speaking races for some years past. Even if that is objected to as an overstatement (there is me, after all), it will probably be admitted that Miller is a writer out of the ordinary, worth more than a single glance; and after all, he is a completely negative, unconstructive, amoral writer, a mere Jonah, a passive acceptor of evil, a sort of Whitman among the corpses. Paizi Whatman oli peräreikämiehiä.
ellauri245.html on line 61: Tillsammans med en väninna, Eva Franchell, var Lindh på onsdagseftermiddagen den 10 september 2003 ute i centrala Stockholm för att handla kläder. Under ett besök på varuhuset NK blev hon på första våningen överfallen och mycket allvarligt knivskuren av den då okände men därefter ökände Mijailo Mijailović strax efter klockan 16.00. Lindh hade vid tillfället inget personskydd av Säpo. Klockan 16.41 gick nyhetsbyrån TT ut med nyheten att utrikesministern hade blivit knivskuren. Lindh fick en mycket stor mängd blod, sammanlagt 80 liter, men det hjälpte inte. Mijailo Mijailović greps. Han förnekade all inblandning fram till den 6 januari 2004, då han erkände mordet. Han dömdes till livstids fängelse, och där sitter han än idag, om inte han har dött. USA:s utrikesminister Colin Powell kunde ej delta på grund av trafikproblem.
ellauri245.html on line 65: Costa Rica namngav 2005 en nyfunnen stekel (pistiäinen) efter Anna Lindh till Polycyrtus lindhae. Bakgrunden var hennes stöd för att bevara landets biologiska mångfald. "Polycyrtus lindhae har mycket gemensamt med Anna Lindh", motiverade professor Roberto Artavia Loría, chef för landets institut för biodiversitet. "Stekeln är vacker och färgsprakande, nästan utdöd, och spelar en viktig roll i korsbefruktningen av många arter i våra regnskogar. Anna Lindh var en dynamisk och färgstark individ som reste runt i världen och korsbefruktade det globala arbetet för att bevara den biologiska mångfalden. Och hon är död." Harvard University instiftade 2006 en professur i globalt ledarskap och statskunskap till minne av Lindh.
ellauri245.html on line 165: This revolting info comes from Jo´s extremely boring autobio that just catalogues his successes.
ellauri245.html on line 192: Harry imee savua syvälle keuhkoihin. Hänen pitäisi lakata polttamasta. Siskoa ei häirinnyt että Robin Hood puhui amerikanmurteella. Kevin Kostner pani asiat järjestykseen Sherwoodissa ja nyyhkytti kun Batman ja Robin saivat toisensa. Harryn sisko taitaa olla vajakki. Humalaisen abon leuka retkahti taas rinnalle. Jo Nesbössä on rasistin vikaa selvästi.
ellauri245.html on line 201: Harry Reikää ehdotetaan selvittämään norjalaisen reikäasiakkaan kuolemaa. Ei vizi, sekö goblin taas?
ellauri245.html on line 203: The popularity of "goblin mode" may be linked to a rejection of the carefully curated lifestyles often presented by users of social media platforms. The trend has also been linked to a manner of coping with the effects of the COVID-19 pandemic on society since this is described as a way of life that gives people permission to ditch societal norms and embrace their basic instincts and in social media, letting their inner goblin out has been a freeing experience.
ellauri245.html on line 294: „Jo Nesbøs 700-seitiges Krimi-Opus „Leopard“ nötigt Bewunderung ab ob der fehlerfreien, mathematisch anmutenden Konstruktion. Doch darin liegt auch seine Schwäche: Es gleicht einer Kunstübung, die wegen dieser Künstlichkeit nichts mehr mit einem Krimi zu tun hat. Nesbø bremst sich selber aus, lässt nur aufkeimen, um es wieder vom Tapet zu nehmen, hat er doch schon sämtliche Neben- und Kernthemen ineinander verwoben. Er hat den Bogen überspannt, legt falsche Fährten und lässt das Weber-Schiffchen in seinem Geflecht wirklich durch alle Richtungen schießen, um seine Kernthemen anzuheizen und das eine mit in das andere herüberzuziehen. Er überhitzt. Nach etwa 500 Seiten steht ein exaltiertes, kühnes Gerüst eines Molekülmodells mit dutzenden angeordneter Atome. Nicht, dass das nicht zu verstehen wäre. Doch es entbehrt jeder menschlichen Natürlichkeit. Die restlichen 200 Seiten wirken wie die Anmerkungen zu einem Fachbuch; und das, obgleich doch der blutige Showdown erst noch kommen soll.“
ellauri245.html on line 308: Etter 21,36 km med is, slush, sørpe, granbar, togskinner, sukker og melis under skia. Etter diverse problemer i smørebua (mannen som melder pass er lik hjelpeløs kone). Etter 580 høydemeter. Etter staking over vannene. Etter å ha gått til et sted med rart navn og drømt om vaffel og kaffe, for så å komme til påskestengt dør. Etter å ha slukt det ene knekkebrødet jeg hadde med og vurdert sjokoladetiggerrunde blant de andre fremmøtte. Etter å ha kommet meg opp den aller siste bakken på vei hjem. Da, da kommer en pensjonist seilende opp på sida mi. Han ser på meg og sier: "Ja, det begynnere bli litt trått nå. Men det verste er at kondisjonen min ikke er det samme lenger". Hadde tenkt til å spørre hvor han hadde gått, men det rakk jeg ikke før han hadde seilt videre i altfor god stil.
ellauri245.html on line 355: Jerry Loch on kasvanut 4cm edellisestä kirjasta. Oltuaan suht väpelö vielä lepakon ja torakoiden aikana Jerrystä on nyt tehty jonkinlainen supergoblin, jota kazellaan jonkun mustatukkaisen pienihampaisen norjalaisen panopuun näkökulmasta. Tyyriit norjalaiset säikyttelee vierastyöläisiä. Kylläpä on narsistista taas. Importerte arbetskraft fra Pakistan og Afrika. Helkkarin hongkongilaiset, vapaakuppasia apinanaamoja. Taaskaan ei koukut nuku kunnon yöunia. Tupakki piti saada tietysti: har du en røyk. Samaa hoki kynäkaula Karl-Ove Knausgård juuri näihin samoihin aikoihin. Knausgård er mest kjend for det sjølvbiografiske seksbindsverket Min Kamp (2009-2011). Taidan olla pihalla kuin lumiukko Jonnen väliinpudonneista kirjoista. Lumiukkoasiaan viitataan toistamiseen. Pitänee vilkasta sen juonipaljastuksia.
ellauri245.html on line 375: Jeg finner det svært interessant at politiets etterforskningsarbeid ikke har vært et like populært felt i politiforskningen (se Høigård, 2005 og Valland, 2011), mens det samtidig finnes mange medierte bilder av hva det angivelig handler om. Selv om politiforskningen har vist lite oppmerksomhet til etterforskere og deres arbeid, vies det en enorm interesse for feltet fra andre ikke-akademiske områder. Det skrives flere bøker om fiktive etterforskere, og TV-serier og film sendes ofte på TV i beste sendetid. I en undersøkelse foretatt i 2012, ble kriminalromaner rangert som nummer to, etter bøker i den bestselgende sjangeren Skjønnlitterære romaner og noveller (Bokhandlerforeningen, 2012). Forfatteren og musikeren Jo Nesbø har gitt ut ti bøker om fiktiv figuren Harry Hole, en dyktig politietterforsker. Leserne følger Hole gjennom alle sakene han etterforsker, og får også innblikk i hans personlige problemer, som er kjæmpemange.
ellauri245.html on line 377: Forfatteren Jørn Lier Horst, jobbet som etterforskningsleder i Vestfold politidistrikt frem til september 2013. Han har gitt ut ni bøker om den fiktive etterforskeren William Wisting. I likhet med bøkene til Nesbø, får også leserne til disse bøkene følge etterforskerens liv og sakene som etterforskes. Horst mener selv at hans erfaring med miljøet, metodene og rutinene preger bøkene hans.
ellauri245.html on line 381: hun tydelig på at bokens komplott var 100% fiksjon. Boken hadde ikke grobunn i
ellauri245.html on line 382: verken saker eller noe hun hadde jobbet med tidligere, og det var viktig for henne å få frem at hun ikke har brutt taushetsplikten (NRK, 2014). Hun forteller videre at hun alltid har lest krimbøker, og ofte latt seg irritere av feil og unøyaktigheter i bøkene.
ellauri245.html on line 390: jobber med med mistenkelige dødsfall og forbrytelser, og løser sakene ved å benytte kriminaltekniske metoder og studere bevisene. Den norske TV-kanalen TV2, sendte våren 2014 krimserien Det tredje øyet. I serien følger seerne etterforskeren Viggo Lust sin kamp om å finne datteren, som forsvant sporløst fire år tidligere. I serien får seerne god kjennskap til etterforskernes private forhold. Serien handler på mange måter mer om etterforskerne, enn om sakene de etterforsker.
ellauri245.html on line 397: E2 sier «…når man jobber som etterforsker så gjør man bare den delen du ikke ser på TV». Etterforskeren sikter til papirarbeidet, som opptar størst del av arbeidet deres. Det kan tyde på at beskrivelsene etterforskerne gir av deres arbeid, spriker med det stereotypiske synet på etterforskningsarbeid. E3 tydeliggjør den medierte fremstillingen av etterforskningsarbeidet, og sier:
ellauri245.html on line 404: Etterforskeren gir uttrykk for at fremstillingen er knyttet til seertall. En kan spørre seg om hvem som ville sett på en serie hvor etterforskeren sitter på kontoret og redigerer saker hver dag? Etterforskernes beskrivelser av deres arbeid, skiller seg betraktelig fra hvordan etterforskningsarbeidet fremstilles i TV og medier. Etterforskere på TV og film er mer ute i feltet enn inne på kontoret. Nå skal det nevnes at etterforskerne i denne studien jobber med generell etterforskning og etterforskning av familievoldssaker, ikke drapssaker. Likevel kan det tenkes at en del av befolkningen har gjort seg sine tanker om politiets etterforskningsarbeid, med utgangspunkt i den medierte presentasjonen av arbeidet.
ellauri245.html on line 406: I filmer, TV-serier og bøker er etterforskere ute og arbeider i feltet. De reiser til åsteder, foretar rundspørringer og følger sporene. De er sjeldent inne på kontoret og skriver rapporter. Etterforskerne forteller at det er en stor avstand mellom deres jobb, og den jobben som blir fremstilt i bøker, TV-serier og film. E2 sier:
ellauri245.html on line 409: etterforskere. De jobber i Delta, minst, i tillegg til at de driver med krimtek.
ellauri245.html on line 412: delt opp. Og når man jobber som etterforsker så gjør man bare den delen du
ellauri245.html on line 423: etterforskere i film og på TV. Min oppfatning var at den største delen av arbeidet etterforskerne gjorde, var å jobbe ute. Jeg så for meg at ordenstjenesten kunne være først på åstedet, men at de da kontaktet etterforskere som kom og tok over. Slik etterforskerne beskriver sin egen jobb, er det ofte ordenstjenesten som er først og sist på stedet. Dersom det trengs å innhentes spor, kontaktes krimteknikerne på politistasjonen. Etterforskernes beskrivelser gir et bilde av at det er ordenstjenesten som foretar straksetterforskningen i initialfasen av sakene deres.
ellauri245.html on line 437: Jobber inne Jobber ute
ellauri245.html on line 444: Det stereotypiske synet på etterforskere og etterforskningsarbeidet, kan minne mer om beskrivelsene annen politiforskning gir av ordenstjenestens arbeid, og det som forbindes med «det egentlige politiarbeidet». Ordenstjenesten jobber ute i feltet, de foretar straksetterforskning, og ordensbetjentene har tildels en uforutsigbar hverdag. Etterforskerne i denne studien jobber stort sett inne på kontoret, de redigerer saker og tar avhør, og har en betydelig mer forutsigbar og rolig hverdag. Det kan tenkes at publikum gjerne har første- og annenhåndskunnskap om
ellauri245.html on line 491: Hankin &kumpp. työtilat ovat työsuojelumääräysten vastaiset. Mutta sitä jänskempäähän se vain on. Mobildekning ja internettilkobling on kaikki mitä ne tarvizee, plus kahvikone tietysti. Med en NATO-bygd søkemotor som er bedre en Google eller Yahoo. Det er skrevet flere hyllemetermed faglitteratur om hva som karakteriserer seriemordare. Dr er ofte narsistiska skallige forfattere, cirka 175cm i höjd, fra Norge. Hank er en flugulort.
ellauri245.html on line 501: Som generalsekretær støtta Lie grunnlegginga av Indonesia og Israel. Han arbeidde for at sovjetiske troppar skulle trekkjast ut or Iran, og for våpenkvile i Kashmir. Sovjetunionen uttrykte misnøye med Lie då han hjelpte til med å skaffe støtte til Sør-Korea då dei vart invaderte i 1950. Lie arbeidde òg for at Sovjetunionen skulle avbryte boikottinga si av SN, sjølv om han truleg hadde lite å gjere med at boikotten vart avslutta. Han motsette seg spansk medlemskap i SN grunna personleg motstand mot Francoregimet. Han arbeidde òg for at Folkerepublikken Kina skulle anerkjennast som medlem av SN etter at nasjonalistregjeringa gjekk i eksil på Taiwan. Han meinte at Folkerepublikken Kina var dei einaste som kunne oppfylle Kina sine obligasjonar fullt ut.
ellauri245.html on line 541: Terbovenin Joosepilla oli koko Norjan suurin konttori. Jooseppi veljeili Quislingin kanssa eikä totellut muita naziveljiä kuin Aatua. Joosepilla ei ollut kovin paljon alaisina saxalaisia mutta se jaxoi vittuilla norjalaisille siviileille vaikka miehitysarmeijan komentaja koitti toppuutella. Rakensi keskitysleirin Levangeriin, vainosi vähiä juutalaisia ynnä teki paljon muuta pahaa. Kun loppupeleissä ei sitten mistään tullut mitään se räjäytti izensä ilmaan viluntorjuntabunkkerissa 50 kg latingilla dynamiittia. Se oli kaikkien aikojen parhaiten ansaittu Nobelin palkinto. Quisling kidutettiin kuoliaaxi vastoin Norjan silloisia lakipykäliä (viikinkiaikaan se olis ollut varmasti a-ok). Inter arma silent leges.
ellauri245.html on line 633: In the 20th century Burundi had three main indigenous ethnic groups: Hutu, Tutsi, and Twa. The area was colonised by the German Empire in the late 1800s and administered as a portion of German East Africa. In Burundi and neighboring Rwanda to the north, the Germans maintained indirect rule, leaving local social structures intact. Under this system, the Tutsi minority generally enjoyed its historically high status as aristocrats, whereas the Hutus occupied the bottom of the social structure. Princely and monarchal rulers belonged to a unique ethnic group, Ganwa, though over time the political salience of this distinction declined and the category was subsumed by the Tutsi grouping. During World War I, Belgian troops from the Belgian Congo occupied Burundi and Rwanda. In 1919, under the auspices of the nascent League of Nations, Belgium was given the "responsibility" of administering "Ruanda-Urundi" as a mandated territory. Though obligated to promote social progress in the territory, the Belgians did not alter the local power structures. Following World War II, the United Nations was formed and Ruanda-Urundi became a trust territory under Belgian administration, which required the Belgians to politically "edducate the locals and make them really fit", to prepare them for independence.
ellauri245.html on line 672: In 2009, Minister of Defence Anne-Grete Strøm-Erichsen visited the Congo to observe the conflict. She agreed to send 2 Norwegian guys to supply manpower to the United Nations peace-keeping forces during the Kivu conflict.
ellauri245.html on line 673: In 2009, Norwegian nationals Joshua French and Tjostolv Moland were arrested and charged in the killing of their hired driver, attempted murder of a witness, espionage, armed robbery and the possession of illegal firearms. They were found guilty and sentenced to death, and also fined, along with their employer Norway—$60 million.
ellauri245.html on line 675: Jonas Gahr Støre, Norway´s Foreign Minister said: "I strongly react to the death sentence of two Norwegians ... Norway is a principled opponent of the death penalty and I will contact the DRC's foreign minister to gabble about this." According to Bloomberg.com "Norway also objected to the espionage conviction and the inclusion of the country in the fine, Stoere [sic] said. 'Norway isn't a part of this case.'" Sick. It is more than obvious that she was.
ellauri245.html on line 677: DR Congo´s debt to Norway, 143 million Norwegian kroner, has been erased as a result of a decision by Norway´s Cabinet on October 21, 2011. Would have been cheaper to pay the $60M up front.
ellauri245.html on line 697: There's nobody here Täällei oo ketää
ellauri245.html on line 716: There's nobody here
ellauri245.html on line 741: The Duchess of Sussex has prompted anger over her "mocking" demonstration of a curtsy to Elizabeth II. Royal author Gyles Brandreth, a friend of the royals, told TalkTV: "It's embarrassing, because it is mocking - and nobody curtsies to the Queen like that, and nobody would have advised her to do it that way." He added of Harry: "He would know that the bow, as it were, is a brief nod and the curtsy is to show respect for the sovereign, and in the case of the Queen - a lady in her 90s who actually had earned respect through a lifetime of service, and that was it. To do this sort of mocking thing is uncomfortable, but it is a cultural difference. It's like you would do a curtsy if you were playing in Snow White." Harry näyttää hitaalta neandertaliraukalta jonka ympärillä cromagnon-apina tekee piruetteja.
ellauri245.html on line 752: Oli Robert Altman. Altman´s German grandfather, Franz Altmann der Ältere, anglicized the spelling of the family name from "Altmann" to "Altman".
ellauri245.html on line 762: 1970-luvun loppupuolella alkoi kuitenkin Altmanin alamäki: vaikka Altman ohjasikin vuonna 1979 peräti kolme elokuvaa, niiden taso oli kaukana hänen aiemmista töistään. Tämä kulminoitui vuonna 1980 Disney/Paramount-tuotantoon Kippari-Kalle: Lyttäpäisen vinosuisen suikkikoomikon Robin Williamsin (1951-2014) tähdittämä elokuva teki tuottoa teattereissa, mutta oli aikanaan ja myös nykyään kriitikoiden mielestä Altmanin uran pohjanoteeraus. Variety-lehden mielestä se oli Williamsin paras. Lyttäpäinen Robin Williams oli kyllä erehdyttävästi Popeyen näköinen. Robin ei ihan selvinnyt Solonin 10:nnestä hebdomadista. Kuolinsyy oli "asphyxia through hanging". Tää ei enää ole kivaa, menen hirteen lepäämään.
ellauri246.html on line 40: Hobla uudisoi: Lösnäbben på Unca Scrooge i Äbo Svenska Teaterns julpjäs väcker frågor. Eikö Roope-setä ole skotti eikä verpiö? Kannan vastuuni, sanoo saamelaisrasistinen Mikko Kärnä eikä tee paskaakaan. Se vaan kantaa vastuuta ja jatkaa pahkatöitä. Venäjä on julistettava terroristivaltioxi, huutaa joku EU-ämmä. Suomalaisten on puolustettava Suomea asein ulkomailla, toitottaa mielipide, kaiuttaen Aunuxen seikkailua sata vuotta sitten. Sentään argentiinarit hävis potkupallossa saudiarabeille.
ellauri246.html on line 54: Agnonin kertomus Morsiuskatos ilmestyi 1931, ja hänestä tuli sen ansiosta johtava hepreankielinen kirjailija. Hänelle myönnettiin kahdesti sekä Bialik-palkinto että Israelin valtion kirjallisuuspalkinto. Vuonna 1966 hän sai ensimmäisenä israelilaisena Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon yhdessä Ruotsissa asuvan saksanjuutalaisen runoilijan Nelly Sachsin kanssa. Palkinnon vastaanottotilaisuudessa Agnon esitteli itsensä näin: ”Johtuen historiallisesta katastrofista, jossa Rooman keisari Titus tuhosi Jerusalemin ja Israelin kansa karkotettiin maanpakoon, minä satuin syntymään yhdessä maanpakolaisuuden kaupungeista. Mutta itse olen aina pitänyt itseäni syntyperäisenä jerusalemilaisena.”
ellauri246.html on line 60: Nelly Sachs (oik. Leonie Sachs, 10. joulukuuta 1891 Berliini – 12. toukokuuta 1970) oli saksalais-ruotsalainen runoilija. Hän sai Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon vuonna 1966. Sachs syntyi Berliinissä varakkaaseen keskiluokkaiseen juutalaisperheeseen. Hän oli tehtailija William Sachsin ja tämän vaimon Margaret (o.s. Karger) Sachsin ainoa lapsi. Perhe oli sivistynyt, uskonnollisesti liberaali ja täysin assimiloitunut saksalaiseen kulttuuriin. Nuori Nelly opiskeli musiikkia, tanssia ja kirjallisuutta. Viisitoistavuotiaana hän luki Gösta Berlingin tarun ja kirjoitti ihailijakirjeen Selma Lagerlöfille. Tästä alkoi ihailijakirjeenvaihto, jota kesti 35 vuotta.
ellauri246.html on line 69: Vuonna 1966, yhdessä israelilaisen kirjailijan Samuel Josef Agnonin kanssa Nelly pokkasi Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon. Sachs oli vuoteen 2009 asti ainoa saksalais-ruåzalainen naiskirjailija, joka on saanut tämän palkinnon. 2009 sen sai Herta Müller, Celanin maanmies ja samanlainen antikommunisti Ceausescu-survivori.
ellauri246.html on line 71: Sachs jatkoi yksineloaan vaatimattomassa pienessä asunnossaan, joka oli Tukholman juutalaisen seurakunnan omistuksessa. Hän kärsi masennuksesta ja koki useita hermoromahduksia. Juutalaisten joukkotuho toisessa maailmansodassa oli toistuva aihe hänen tuotannossaan. Hänen runokokoelmansa O die Schornsteine (1967) (Oh savupiiput) alkoi sitaatilla Jobin kirjasta ja kuvasi juutalaista kansaa, joka leijailee savuna keskitysleirien savupiipuista matkalla länteen vapauteen kuin Andrei, eli elämästä kuolemaan. Arabien joukkotuhosta 1967 sodassa nobelisteilla ei ollut kuin hyvää sanottavaa.
ellauri246.html on line 87: Lindegren oli Ruotsin akatemian jäsen 1962–1968. A-ha! Hänet valittiin Ruotsin akatemiaan Dag Hammarskjöldin seuraajaksi tämän kuoleman jälkeen. Hän oli Bonniers Litterära Magasinin, Stockholms-Tidningenin ja Dagens Nyheterin kirjallisuuskriitikko. Vuosina 1948–1950 hän oli aikakauskirja Prisman ja Alepan päätoimittaja. Hänen isoisänsä oli säveltäjä Johan Lindegren. Muikean näköinen Lindegren teki oopperalibrettoja, muun muassa Karl-Birger Blomdahlin oopperaan Aniara, joka perustuu 1/2nobelisti Harry Martinsonin runoelmaan Aniara (a-ha!).
ellauri246.html on line 159: Freiheitswege für Jeremias und Hiobs Staub - Vapaateitä Jeremiaan ja Jobin tomulle -
ellauri246.html on line 189: Joseph Brodsky (alun perin Iosif Aleksandrovitš Brodski, ven. Иосиф Александрович Бродский, 24. toukokuuta 1940 Leningrad, Neuvostoliitto – 28. tammikuuta 1996 New York, Yhdysvallat) oli venäläissyntyinen yhdysvaltalainen runoilija. Hänelle myönnettiin Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinto vuonna 1987. Selvä pysähtyneisyyden ajan poliittinen broileri. Kaikki njeuvostoliittolaiset dynypalkitut ovat pokanneet länkkäreille ja pyllistäneet kotimaahansa, paizi Solohov, joka pyllisti vasta vähän lopuxi. Se ei ole sattumaa, se on ukkotemian huolellisen propagandatyön tulosta.
ellauri246.html on line 226: With Abraham and Jacob of old times. Täällä vanhat tutut Abraham ja Jaakob.
ellauri246.html on line 248: They lived in narrow streets and lanes obscure, (Sori, nehän oli arabeja ne! My bad...)
ellauri246.html on line 360: Mutta venäjä, Neuvostoliiton runous oli lähellä. Hän on aktiivisesti assimiloitu, käsittely, kokemus Bagritskyä, oli Boris Slutskyn fani. Marina Tsvetaeva, Osip Mandelstam ja Boris Pasternak, toinen venäjän juutalainen joka sai kutsun Tukholmaan Nobel-juhliin muttei päässyt tulemaan.
ellauri246.html on line 362: Pasternakille myönnettiin Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinto vuonna 1958, mutta hän joutui luopumaan palkinnon vastaanottamisesta, koska ei olisi voinut palata takaisin Tukholmasta Neuvostoliittoon, mikäli hän matkustaisi Ruotsiin vastaanottamaan palkinnon. Literaturnaja gazeta tuomitsi palkinnon myöntämisen Pasternakille vihamieliseksi teoksi Neuvostoliittoa kohtaan. Pasternak erotettiin myös Neuvostoliiton kirjailijaliitosta viisi päivää Nobel-palkinnon myöntämisen jälkeen.
ellauri246.html on line 366: David Leanin ohjaama elokuva Tohtori Živago valmistui 1965. Sen käsikirjoituksen laati Pasternakin romaanin pohjalta Robert Bolt. Robert Frost jäi nuolemaan näppejään. Samaan aikaan Joseph alkaa opiskella englantia ja puolaa itsenäisesti.
ellauri246.html on line 388: Viittaus päätelmään: Suuren runoilijan työ on kiittämätön asia. Tälle olisi omistettava vuosia ja kirjoittaa monikulttuurinen tutkimus. Asenne kohti häntä on epäselvä. On ihmisiä, monet heistä, ja he ansaitsevat syvän kunnioituksen, jotka eivät siedä Josifin laajaa runoutta. Sitä pidetään erityisesti myöhäisissä näytteissä, kylmänä, riistettynä elämästä. Mutta se, anna sen olla kylmä, täysin omistettu. Maahanmuutoksessa Joseph Alexandrovich kääntyi välittömästi esseegenrelle ja kirjoitti niitä elämänsä loppuun. Ja puheessaan, jota Nobel-palkinto Laureat perinne perinteisesti pitävät, hän korosti uudelleen sitä, että pitää runoutta pelkästään yksilön asiasta, ja itse on yksityinen henkilö. Vittuako menivät julkaisemaan ne edes samizdattina.
ellauri246.html on line 410: Brodskyn pyrkimys sopii henkisesti totalitarismin varapuheenjohtajaksi, Brodsky on yhä enemmän tunkeutumassa eksistenttisiltä maidosilta peremmälle. Toimittajan kysymyksestä, mikä vaikutti hänen luonteensa muodostumiseen: "Kun olin 22 tai 23-vuotias, minulla oli tunne, että minussa oli jotain erilaista, minuun sattui, ja että en ollut kiinnostunut ympäristöstä ... parhaimmillaan kuten ponnahduslaudasta ... »Kuvitukset suuntasivat yhä enemmän itsepäisyyteen. "Ennemmin tai myöhemmin, hetki tulee, kun maallinen vetovoima on lakannut toimimasta." Runoiden sisäelämä, jossa tää paljon puhuttu transsendescence vallitsee, lähti liikenteeseen ulkoisesta elämästä. Fyysisesti maailmassa BrodSky vietti suurimman osan ajasta puhtaan hengen kuningaskunnassa eli vetelehti toimetonna. Viranomaiset hermostuivat, kun Brodskin runoilijapersoonallisuus muuttui vähitellen itsenäiseksi suljetuksi järjestelmäksi. Maailmanlaaja maailma, kuten Lurien tutkija näytti, oli Brodski ainoa vaihtoehto löytää hengellistä vapautta. Sitää löytää nykyään vaan lännestä. "Sisäinen maailma on liioiteltu, ja ulkoinen, vähentynyt" - ilmoittaa viranomaisille naapurinsa autobiografinen sankari psykiatrisessa sairaalassa runossa "Goryunov ja Gorchakov".
ellauri246.html on line 422: Joskus Brodsky tarkastelee itseään erittäin korkealla ja erittäin kaukaisella näkökulmalla, esimerkiksi enkelin silmät ("keskustelu ..."). Tämä on täydellinen, erittäin objektiivinen näkökulma. Brodskin itsensä määritelmä ei riitä. Hän asettaa kuoleman ilmiön keskenään ja elämään. Rajojen tragedia on Brodskin käsitystä, joka ylittää kaikki hänen draaman. Jos haluat löytää aukon rakkaastasi, joka jakaa sulle kotona ja auttaa tietoisuutta, kaikki odottavat erottamista maailmasta. Suurempi kauhu päällekkäin ja vähemmän juna-asennossa, joka jossain määrin neutraloi sen ja auttaa kestämään sitä. Kuolema olennaisena osana, jolla on merkittävä paikka Brodskin teoksissa. Työn varhaisessa vaiheessa on ominaista epiteeli "musta". Brodsky antaa kuoleman proosan ulkonäöltään. Itse aika, Brodsky, joka on luotu kuolemalla. "Henkilö on itsensä loppu ja menee pois." Rajojen prisman kautta kuolleisuus arvioi runoilijan ja Brodsky, jossa kuoleman osuus esitellään, jää riman alle. Runko korostaa, että sielu, joka on uupunut kokemuksilla, on kuin langat. Elämän käsitys liikkeeksi kuolemaan asettavat melankolian. Brodskin sävyisä runo on eräistä irrottamista päivittäin. Brodsky pyrkii katsomaan reunaa ja olettaa, että se odottaa meitä kuoleman jälkeen. Aluksi runoilija mahdollistaa mahdollisuuden elää arkussa. "Letter pullossa" (1965): "Kun on vaatimaton alus ... Menen hienosti ehkä." Hänellä on puhtaasti symbolistiset ajatukset elämästä unelmana unessa ja kuolema - ylösnousemuksena toisen valtakunnassa. Vähitellen BrodSky alkaa paljastaa järkeistisen ymmärryksen ja tulkinnan tunnettuja uskonnollisia ja filosofisia käsitteitä. Eli sieltä ne tulee kaikki taantumuxen ainexet kun juutalaista vähän raaputtaa.
ellauri246.html on line 453: Runon tila on kulttuurin tila, hengellisyys. Ja täällä vuosisatojen ajan yksi runoilija kuulee toisen runon, jonka jauhot hän oppii ja ottaa omaan pussiinsa. Hinnat yksi ja muu ihmisen kuoleman aidan suru. Jos Donna, Earthly Life - Hell, sitten Brodsky tykkää siitä lähtä jo kävelylle, kauheasta tuomioistuimesta, jossa individualistiset ihmiset onnistuvat jopa nukkumaan. Disoobidisen unen motiivi, joka kattaa kirjaimellisesti kaiken maan päällä. Ei sattumalta myös elossa olevan tekijän kuvauksessa ei juuri mikään poikkea kuolleista. Sleep ja hyvä ja paha, ja Jumala nukahti - kaikki nukkuu, ja siellä on lumisadetta kuin Neuvostoliiton televisiossa ohjelman loputtua, joka peittää maan kuin valkoisen savvan. Ainoa olento, joka Brodskin mukaan ei nuku tällä hetkellä ", runoilija (John Donne), jonka tavoitteena on luoda ihanteellinen maailma, kauniimpi kuin koskaan keksittyt. Vaikka runot on kirjoitettu maan päällä, se korostaa Brodskista, että elämää ei ole tarkoitus lopettaa.
ellauri246.html on line 533: Kaikista mitä Brodsky omistaa, ei puutu vain lahjakkuutta, vaan kyky luoda ihanaa. Ja ulkomailla, jonkun muun paikan edessä, hänen edessään sama arkki. "Tämä valkoinen, tyhjä paperiarkki on täynnä rivejä. Tyhjyys voitetaan luovuudella. " Tässä on kaava, joka Brodsky tarjoaa taistelun tyhjästä. Aitoaan testataan ei-olemassaolo, turha kiirehtiä ikuisuudessa. Luovuus oli ainoa lanka, joka yhdistää Brodskin todellisuuteen, ja se on luovuutta, kuten me tiedämme runolla "Uusi elämä" (1988, Nobelin palkinnon toimituksen jälkeen) innostuksella kaiken pahan maan kasvoilta. Brodskin tuomioistuin itse on paljon tiukempi. Ehkä kirjoittaja itse on pettynyt niihin teksteihin, joista pidämme. On väistämätön ajatus henkilö, jolla on tehostetut vaatimukset. Dostoevskyn omistuksessa olevassa artikkelissa Brodsky toteaa, että kesken luovuutta alkaa haluta itseparannusta, mieluiten pyhyyttä. Mutta tietyssä vaiheessa sanataiteilija huomaa, että hänen sulka on saavuttanut enemmän menestystä kuin hänen sielunsa. Ja sitten hän asettaa tehtävän vähentää luovuuden ja persoonallisuuden välistä kuilua. Näin ollen moraalisen itseparannusongelma tulee esiin. "Mitä sinä työskentelet nyt?" - "Työskentelen itseäni". Oletko työskennellyt hyvin? kysyi Rodin kavereilta. Kuis käsi käyb, kysyi Jaakko Hintikka apupojilta.
ellauri246.html on line 564: Työn valmisteluxi käytin suoraan Joseph Alexandrovichin kirjoituksia sekä Leo Vladimirovich Losevin kirjaa "Joseph Brodsky. Kirjallisen elämäkerran kokemus. " Tämä kirja sisältää kaikki kattavat tiedot Brodskin elämästä ja työstä. Käytetyt myös: Kokoelma haastatteluja runoilijalta - täällä kaikki haastattelut kerättiin, mikä Iosif Alexandrovich antoi; Salomon Moiseevich Volkovin työ "vuoropuhelujen kanssa Joseph Brodsky" on melko suosittu Venäjällä - tämä on eräänlainen kirjankeskustelu, journalistien keskustelu runoilijalla; Jack Jacob Arkadyvich Gordin, Writer, "Knight ja kuolema, tai elämä suunnitelmana: noin niinkuin Joseph Brodsky." Se sisältää haastattelun Brodskin kanssa, Gordin itse, hänen tarinansa viestintään runoilijan kanssa.
ellauri246.html on line 864: Nobel-palkinnoista. Brodsky uskoi aina, että hänelle voitaisiin merkitä tämä erittäin arvostettu palkkio. Hänellä oli urheilun luonteeltaan kilpaileva laskimo - nuorista vuosilta välittömän reaktion muiden ihmisten runoihin: Voin tehdä sen paremmin. Eri palkintoja ja palkintoja, jotka putosivat siihen vuoden 1972 jälkeen, hän hoiti pragmaattisesti tai ironisesti antamatta heille paljon merkitystä. Mutta Nobel-palkinto oli hänelle, sekä kaikille venäläisille, erikoishalolle. Nobel-komitean työtä pidetään salaisena, mutta huhujen mukaan Brodski nimitettiin jo vuonna 1980, jolloin Caclaw Milos tuli Laureate. Ja nyt on tietoa Nobelin valinnasta 1987, jossa Brodsky oli mukana. Palkinnon myöntäminen, Nobel komitea laatii lyhyesti, mikä on laureatin tärkein ansio. Diplomassa Brodskyllä seisoi: "Kattavalle kirjallisuudelle, joka erottaa ajatuksen ja runollisen voimakkuuden selkeyden."
ellauri246.html on line 866: Nobel-palkinnon Brodsskin myöntäminen ei aiheuttanut tällaisia riita-asioita ja ristiriitoja kuin muutamat muut Nobel-komitean päätökset. Vuoteen 1987 mennessä hän oli jo tuttu ja eniten sympaattinen luku Euroopan ja Amerikan älyllisissä piireissä. Hänen muistelman proosa oli intiimi ja koskettava. Hänen jakeidensa käännöksissä kunnioitettiin ja joskus ihailua, ja kaikki länsillä tiesivät runolliseen maineeseensa kotimaassaan. Nobel-komitean päätös, suosionosoitukset veteraanien todistuksen mukaan luettiin toimittajille ja yleisölle, oli erityisen voimakas ja pitkä. Brodsky sanoi ensimmäisessä haastattelussa palkinnoista: "Hän loi Venäjän kirjallisuutta, ja Amerikan kansalainen sai sen." Epistä.
ellauri246.html on line 894: Venäjän runoilija I. Brodsky (On mielenkiintoista huomata, että maailman tietosanakirja on nimeltään American) nuorimpien kirjailijoiden, jotka ovat kunnioittaneet Nobelin palkkiokirjallisuutta.
ellauri246.html on line 895: Vuonna 1987, kun se tapahtui, hän oli 47-vuotias. Joseph Alexandrovich Brodsky Muut Nobel Laureate Alexander Isavich Solzhenitsyn symboloi nykyaikaista kirjallisuutta koko kulttuurimaailman edustuksessa.
ellauri246.html on line 922: I. Brodsskyn Nobelin palkinto ei ole odottamaton. Hän oli tietysti oikeutetusti nolo siitä, että viides venäläinen kirjailija on sekin amerikkalainen. Nobel-komitea noudattaa kaavaa kuin sarjamurhaaja.
ellauri246.html on line 928: Nobelin luennon ensimmäisistä sanoista päätellen hän imutti itseään yksityisesti ja tämän koko sosiaalisen roolin erityisen käyttöiän mieluummin.
ellauri246.html on line 972: It is the details that delight. Donne hated milk. Mortally sick, about to celebrate his death by sitting for his portrait in a shroud, he was urged by his doctor that ‘by Cordials, and drinking milk twenty days together, there was a probability of his restoration to health’. Donne would have none of it. The doctor (a Dr Fox, son of the author of the ‘Boke of Martyrs’) insisted that his patient should at least try. Donne thereupon drank milk – but for ten days only. Then he told Dr Fox that he would not drink the stuff for another ten days even ‘upon the best moral assurance of having twenty years added to his life’.
ellauri247.html on line 80: Lepakko Jo Nesbø Harry Hole Norjalaispimun kohtu oli fileerattu kuin sei. Bobbyn päästä purskahteli pinkki hien ja veren sekainen suihku.
ellauri247.html on line 103: The chief of her tribe listened to her. When she had finished and begun to wail for her daughters, whom she thought she would see no more, he said, "Mother of the Bilbers, your daughters shall be avenged if aught has happened to them at the hands of Narahdarn. Fresh are his tracks, and the young men of your tribe shall follow whence they have come, and finding what Narahdarn has done, swiftly shall they return. Then shall we hold a corrobboree, and if your daughters fell at his hand Narahdarn shall be punished."
ellauri247.html on line 106: That night was the corrobboree held. The women sat round in a half-circle, and chanted a monotonous chant, keeping time by hitting, some of them, two boomerangs together, and others beating their rolled up opossum rugs.
ellauri247.html on line 114: GLOSSARY Bahloo, moon. Beeargah, hawk. Beeleer, black cockatoo. Beereeun, prickly lizard. Bibbee, woodpecker, bird. Bibbil, shiny-leaved box-tree. Bilber, a large kind of rat. Bindeah, a prickle or small thorn. Birrahlee, baby. Birrableegul, children. Birrahgnooloo, woman's name, meaning "face like a tomahawk handle." Boobootella, the big bunch of feathers at the back of an emu. Boolooral, an owl. Boomerang, a curved weapon used in hunting and in warfare by the blacks; called Burren by the Narran blacks. Borah, a large gathering of blacks where the boys are initiated into the mysteries which make them young men. Bou-gou-doo-gahdah, the rain bird. Bouyou, legs. Bowrah or Bohrah, kangaroo. Bralgahs, native companion, bird. Bubberah, boomerang that returns and bumps you in the back of your head. Buckandee, native cat. Buggoo, flying squirrel. Bulgahnunnoo, bark-backed. Bunbundoolooey, brown flock pigeon. Bunnyyarl, flies. Byamee, man's name, meaning "big man." Bwana, African sir. Capparis, caper. Combi, bag made of kangaroo skins. Comfy, foldable plastic pillow. Cookooburrah, laughing jackass. Coorigil, name of place, meaning sign of bees. Corrobboree, black fellows' dance. Cunnembeillee, woman's name, meaning pig-weed root. Curree guin guin, butcher-bird. Daen, black fellows. Dardurr, bark, humpy or shed. Dayah minyah, carpet snake (vällykäärme). Deegeenboyah, soldier-bird. Decreeree, willy wagtail. Dinewan, emu. Dingo, native dog. Doonburr, a grass seed. Doongara, lightning. Dummerh, 2nd rate pigeons. Dungle, water hole. Dunnia, wattle. Eär moonan, long sharp teeth. Effendi, Turkish sir. Euloo marah, large tree grubs. Edible. In fact yummy. Euloo wirree, rainbow. Gayandy, borah devil. Galah or Gilah, a French grey and rose-coloured cockatoo. Gidgereegah, a species of small parrot. Gooeea, warriors. Googarh, iguana. Googoolguyyah, run into trees. Googoorewon, place of trees. Goolahwilleel, absolutely top-knot pigeon. Gooloo, magpie. Goomade, red stamp. Goomai, water rat. Goomblegubbon, bastard or just plain turkey. Goomillah, young girl's dress, consisting of waist strings made of opossum's sinews with strands of woven opossum's hair hanging about a foot square in front. Yummy. Goonur, kangaroo rat. Goug gour gahgah, laughing-jackass. Literal meaning, "Take a stick of bamboo and boil it in the water." Grooee, handsome foliaged tree bearing a plum-like fruit, tart and bitter, but much liked by the blacks. Guinary, light eagle hawk. Guineboo, robin redbreast. Gurraymy, borah devil. Gwai, red. Gwaibillah, star. Kurreah, an alligator. Mahthi, dog. Maimah, stones. Maira, paddy melon. Massa, American sir. May or Mayr, wind. Mayrah, spring wind. Meainei, girls. Midjee, a species of acacia. Millair, species of kangaroo rat. Moodai, opossum. Moogaray, hailstones. Mooninguggahgul, mosquito-calling bird. Moonoon, emu spear. Mooregoo, motoke. Mooroonumildah, having no eyes. Morilla or Moorillah, pebbly ridges. Mubboo, beefwood-tree. Mullyan, eagle hawk. Mullyangah, the morning star. Murgah muggui, big grey spider. Murrawondah, climbing rat. Narahdarn, bat. Noongahburrah, tribe of blacks on the Narran. Nullah nullah, a club or heavy-headed weapon. Nurroo gay gay, dreadful pain. Nyunnoo or Nunnoo, a grass humpy. Ooboon, blue-tongued lizard. Oolah, red prickly lizard. Oongnairwah, black driver. Ouyan, curlew. Piggiebillah, ant-eater. One of the Echidna, a marsupial. Quarrian, a kind of parrot. Quatha, quandong; a red fruit like a round red plum. Sahib, Indian sir. Senhor, Brazilian sir. U e hu, rain, only so called in song. Waligoo, to hide. Wahroogah, children. Wahn, crow. Walla Walla, place of many waters. Wallah, I swear to God. Wallah, Indian that carries out a manual task. Waywah, worn by men, consisting of a waistband made of opossum's sinews with bunches of strips of paddy melon skins hanging from it. Wayambeh, turtle. Weeoombeen, a small bird, girl's name. Some thing like robin redbreast, only with longer tail and not so red a breast. Willgoo willgoo, pointed stick with feathers on top. Widya nurrah, a wooden battle-axe shaped weapon. Wirree, small piece of bark, canoe-shaped. Wirreenun, priest or doctor. Womba, mad. Wondah, spirit or ghost. Wurranunnah, wild bees. Wurranunnah, tame bees. Wurrawilberoo, whirlwind with a devil in it; also clouds of Magellan. Yaraan, white gum-tree. Yhi, the sun. Yuckay, oh dear!
ellauri247.html on line 123: According to Australian linguist R.M.W. Dixon ("The Languages of Australia," Cambridge, 1980), the word probably is from Guugu Yimidhirr (Endeavour River-area Aborigine language) /gaNurru/ "large black kangaroo."
ellauri247.html on line 124: In 1898 the pioneer ethnologist W.E. Roth wrote a letter to the Australasian pointing out that gang-oo-roo did mean 'kangaroo' in Guugu Yimidhirr, but this newspaper correspondence went unnoticed by lexicographers. Finally the observations of Cook and Roth were confirmed when in 1972 the anthropologist John Haviland began intensive study of Guugu Yimidhirr and again recorded /gaNurru/.
ellauri247.html on line 186: obias">Tobias George Smollett (1721 Dalquhurn, Dumbartonshire, Skotlanti – 1771 Livorno, Italia) oli skotlantilainen kirjailija. Hän opiskeli Glasgow'n yliopistossa, jossa hän oli välskärin ja apteekkarin opissa ja joutui 1741 ottamaan paikan muutamaksi vuodeksi välskärinä espanjalaiseen Amerikkaan määrätyssä sotalaivassa tarjottuaan turhaan murhenäytelmäänsä The Regicide julkaistavaksi (painettu 1749).
ellauri247.html on line 209: L'Histoire de Gil Blas de Santillane n'est pas un roman picaresque puisque le personnage éponyme monte au fur et à mesure l'échelle sociale contrairement au picaro qui, lui, cherche en vain à atteindre la richesse et la noblesse, contrairement à Gil Blas qui devient riche et obtient ses lettres de noblesse. La dimension religieuse est présente dans l’œuvre puisqu'Ambroise de Lamela et don Raphaël, deux brigands ayant joué des tours à Samuel Simon et ayant volé l'argent d'un couvent, seront punis par l'Inquisition sous les yeux de Gil Blas (XII, 1).
ellauri247.html on line 211: Alain-René Lesage ou Le Sage, né le 8 mai 1668 à Sarzeau1 et mort le 17 novembre 1747 à Boulogne-sur-Mer, est un romancier et dramaturge français. Bien qu’il soit aujourd’hui surtout connu pour son roman picaresque Histoire de Gil Blas de Santillane, Lesage est l’auteur d’une importante production théâtrale. Il a notamment contribué au développement et au renouvellement du « théâtre de la Foire » Après les marionnettes et les danseurs de corde, les acteurs forains en vinrent progressivement à jouer de véritables petites comédies, souvent écrites par des auteurs de renom et de talent. Toujours modeste, c’est par ses ouvrages seuls qu’il obtint sa réputation, et jamais il ne rechercha les dignités et les titres littéraires. Nietsche piti Gil Blasista enemmän kuin Shakespearesta. Varmaan se oli parempi kuin tuo nenäkäs skottitohtori.
ellauri247.html on line 230: Pikareskiromaani syntyi Espanjassa 1500-luvun puolivälissä tarkoituksellisesti kehiteltynä vastagenrenä ritariromaanille ja sen harhailevalle, haavemaailmassa elävälle sankarille. Pseudoautobiografisena pikareskiromaanin tapahtumat myötäilevät sankarin (espanjan picaro = 'ratsastaja') monipolvista vaellusta ja antavat sen kautta humoristis-satiirisen kuvan maailmasta. Veijarityylin (gusta picaresca) varhainen edustaja oli tuntemattoman tekijän romaani La vida de Lazarillo de Tormes (1554). Muita varhaisia klassikkoja ovat Mateo Alemánin La Vida del picaro Guzman de Alfarache (1599–1604), sekä lajin tunnetuin klassikko, Miguel de Cervantes Saavedran El ingenioso hidalgo don Quijote de la Mancha (1605, 1615, Don Quijote manchalainen, surullisen hahmon ritari). Veijariromaanin sankarina on esiintynyt myös naisia, jotka käyvät veijarimaisesta seikkailusta toiseen pyrkien valloittamaan mahdollisimman paljon varakkaita miehiä, kuten Francisco López de Úbedan romaanissa La pícara Justina (1605).
ellauri247.html on line 234: Thomas Nashe perusti teoksellaan The Unfortunate Traveller, or, The Life of Jacke Wilton (1594) englantilaisen seikkailullisen veijariromaanin tyypin (rogue story). Saksan kirjallisuuden tunnetuin veijariromaani on Hans Jacob von Grimmelshausenin Der abenteurliche Simplicissimus Teutsch (1669, Seikkailukas Simplicissimus), jonka innoittamana julkaistiin muitakin "simplikiaanisia" kirjoja, kuten Johan Beerin Der simplicianische Weltkucker (1677–1679) ja Daniel Speerin Der Ungarische oder Dacianische Simplicissimus (1683). Tunnettuja veijariromaaneja ovat myös ranskalaisen Alain-René Lesagen Histoire de Gil Blas de Santillane (1715–1735, Kavaljeerin muistelmat) sekä englantilaisten Daniel Defoen Moll Flanders (1722, suom.), Henry Fieldingin Jonathan Wild (1743), Tobias Smollettin The Adventures of Roderick Random (1748) ja William Thackerayn The Luck of Barry Lyndon (1844).
ellauri247.html on line 236: Veijariromaanit olivat tavallista suositumpia ensimmäisen ja toisen maailmansodan jälkeisinä vuosina. Nykyajan veijariromaaneissa on perinteiselle veijarihahmolle tuntemattomia moralistin ja anarkistin piirteitä. He ikään kuin edustavat viattomuutta ja kriittistä ajattelua turmeltuneen ja vieraannuttavan maailman keskellä. Moderneja veijariromaaneja ovat esimerkiksi tšekki Jaroslav Hasekin Osudy dobrého vojaka Svejka za svétové valky (1920–1923, Kunnon sotamies Svejkin seikkailut maailmansodassa), yhdysvaltalaisten John Steinbeckin Tortilla Flat (1935, Ystävyyden talo) ja Saul Bellow'n The Adventures of Augie March (1953, Augie Marchin kiemurat) sekä saksalaisten Thomas Mannin Bekenntnisse des Hochstaplers Felix Krull (1954, Huijari Felix Krull), Günter Grassin Die Blechtrommel (1959, Peltirumpu) ja Heinrich Böllin Ansichten eines Clowns (1963). Mannin teoksessa – kuten veijariromaaneissa usein – korostetaan huijariuden ja taiteilijuuden yhteyttä. Peltirummun rumpali Oskar Matzerath on varsin perinteinen veijarityyppi: hän lopettaa kasvamisensa kolmivuotiaana ja tarkkailee yhteiskuntaa kääpiöperspektiivistä saattaen naurettaviksi kaikki ideologiat.
ellauri247.html on line 240: Juu kyllä näissä listoissa on läjittäin juuri sellaisia romaaneja ja hahmoja jotka on olleet musta yököttäviä. Extoi Rabelaisin jäbäkin kuuluisi tähän porukkaan? Laahustaustaisia nousukkaita, joista tulee vitun snobeja. Hyvinkään kultahattuja.
ellauri247.html on line 244: Traditionell ist der Schelmenroman eine (fingierte) Autobiographie mit satirischen Zügen, die bestimmte Missstände in der Gesellschaft thematisiert. Sie beginnt oft mit einer Desillusionierung des Helden, der die Schlechtigkeit der Welt erst hier erkennt. Er begibt sich, sei es freiwillig, sei es unfreiwillig, auf Reisen. Die dabei erlebten Abenteuer sind episodenhaft, d. h., sie hängen nicht voneinander ab und können beliebig erweitert werden, was bei Übersetzungen oft der Fall war. Das Ende ist meist eine „Bekehrung“ des Schelms, nach der er zu einem geregelten Leben findet. Es besteht auch die Möglichkeit einer Flucht aus der Welt, also aus der Realität.
ellauri247.html on line 261: "The learned Smelfungus travelled from Boulogne to Paris, from Paris to Rome, and so on, but he set out with the spleen and jaundice, and every object he passed by was discoloured or distorted. He wrote an account of them, but 'twas nothing but the account of his miserable feelings. I met Smelfungus in the grand portico of the Pantheon—he was just coming out of it. ''Tis nothing but a huge cockpit,' said he—'I wish you had said nothing worse of the Venus de Medici,' replied I—for in passing through Florence, I had heard he had fallen foul upon the goddess, and used her worse than a common strumpet, without the least provocation in nature. I popp'd upon Smelfungus again at Turin, in his return home, and a sad tale of sorrowful adventures had he to tell, 'wherein he spoke of moving accidents by flood and field, and of the cannibals which each other eat, the Anthropophagi'; he had been flayed alive, and bedevil'd, and used worse than St. Bartholomew, at every stage he had come at. 'I'll tell it,' cried Smelfungus, 'to the world.' 'You had better tell it,' said I, 'to your physician.'" (Sterne)
ellauri247.html on line 268: Like Mr. Brattle, in The Vicar of Bulhampton, he was thinking always of the evil things that had been done to him. With the pawky (scottish: having a mocking or cynical sense of humour) and philosophic Scots of his own day (Robertson, Hume, Adam Smith, and "Jupiter" Carlyle) he had little in common, but with the sour and mistrustful James Mill or the cross and querulous Carlyle of a later date he had, it seems to me, a good deal.
ellauri247.html on line 270: He summarised his Continental experience after this wise: inns, cold, damp, dark, dismal, dirty; landlords equally disobliging and rapacious; servants awkward, sluttish, and slothful; postillions lazy, lounging, greedy, and impertinent.
ellauri247.html on line 279: Despite the doctor's unflattering portraits of Frenchmen, M. Babeau admits that his book is one written by an observer of facts, and a man whose statements, whenever they can be tested, are for the most part "singularly exact."
ellauri247.html on line 288: This arrangement, called the cicisbeatura or cicisbeismo, was widely practised, especially among the nobility of the Italian cities of Genoa, Nice, Venice, Florence and Rome. While many contemporary references to cicisbei and descriptions of their social standing exist, scholars diverge on the exact nature of the phenomenon.Some maintain that this institution was defined by marriage contracts, others question this claim and see it as a peculiarity of 18th-century customs that is not well defined or easily explained. Other scholars see it as a sign of the increasing emancipation of aristocratic women in the 18th century.
ellauri247.html on line 295: "If a Frenchman is capable of real friendship, it must certainly be the most disagreeable present he can possibly make to a man of a true English character. You know, madam, we are naturally taciturn, soon tired of impertinence, and much subject to fits of disgust. Your French friend intrudes upon you at all hours; he stuns you with his loquacity; he teases you with impertinent questions about your domestic and private affairs; he attempts to meddle in all your concerns, and forces his advice upon you with the most unwearied importunity; he asks the price of everything you wear, and, so sure as you tell him, undervalues it without hesitation; he affirms it is in a bad taste, ill contrived, ill made; that you have been imposed upon both with respect to the fashion and the price; that the marquis of this, or the countess of that, has one that is perfectly elegant, quite in the bon ton, and yet it cost her little more than you gave for a thing that nobody would wear.
ellauri247.html on line 300: "A Frenchman lays out his whole revenue upon taudry suits of cloaths, or in furnishing a magnificent repas of fifty or a hundred dishes, one-half of which are not eatable or intended to be eaten. His wardrobe goes to the fripier, his dishes to the dogs, and himself to the devil."
ellauri247.html on line 314: Johnson was 180 cm (5 feet 11 inches) tall when the average height of an Englishman was 165 cm (5 feet 5 inches). Tall and robust, he displayed gestures and tics that disconcerted some on meeting him. He had Tourettes syndrome, in fact.
ellauri247.html on line 331: Johnson remained with his close friend Harry Porter during a terminal illness, which ended in Porter's death on 3 September 1734. Porter's wife Elizabeth (née Jervis) (otherwise known as "Tetty") was now a widow at the age of 45, with three children. Some months later, Johnson began to court her. William Shaw, a friend and biographer of Johnson, claims that "the first advances probably proceeded from her, as her attachment to Johnson was in opposition to the advice and desire of all her relations," Johnson was inexperienced in such relationships, but the well-to-do widow encouraged him and promised to provide for him with her substantial savings.
ellauri247.html on line 333: I bet my bottom penny that Sam was at least a part-time faggot. The red cheeked Boswell more than probably blew smoke rings between his legs.
ellauri247.html on line 337: With the widow's money, Johnson opened Edial Hall School as a private academy at Edial, near Lichfield. He had only three pupils: Lawrence Offley, George Garrick, and the 18-year-old David Garrick, who later became one of the most famous actors of his day. The venture was unsuccessful and cost Tetty a substantial portion of her fortune. Instead of trying to keep the failing school going, Johnson began to write his first major work, the historical tragedy Irene. Biographer Robert DeMaria believed that Tourette syndrome likely made public occupations like schoolmaster or tutor almost impossible for Johnson. This may have led Johnson to "the invisible occupation of authorship".
ellauri247.html on line 347: Americans had no more right to govern themselves than the Cornish, and "How is it that we hear the loudest yelps for liberty among the drivers of negroes?" The French and Indian War was a conflict between "two robbers" of Native American lands, and that neither deserved to live there.
ellauri247.html on line 386: Tweedle Do and Tweedle Don't are the great grand brothers of Tweedledee and Tweedledum who appear in Disney's Alice's Wonderland Bakery voiced by Vanessa Bayer and Bobby Moynihan in Episode 16 Meet the Tweedles.
ellauri247.html on line 388: Tweedle Dee & Tweedle Dum" is the opening song on Bob Dylan's 2001 album Love and Theft. Bob is famous for tweedling his dums and quite particularly his "D." Mom said don't but he did. (Tweedle twē′dl, v.t. to handle lightly: ( obs.) to wheedle.— v.i. to wriggle.)
ellauri247.html on line 406: Poliittisesti Swift oli ollut aina syntymästään asti köyhimyxenä lähellä whigejä, mutta vaihtoi vuoden 1710 lopulla sitten toryjen puolelle. Syynä loikkaukseen olivat ensinnäkin whigien myötämielinen suhtautuminen nonkonformistikirkkoihin, joita Swift ei voinut sietää. Lisäksi whig-puolue ei puoltanut hänen papiksi vihkimistään Englannissa, eikä Swiftin pappien verotuxen kevennyslobbya. Toryjen päästyä hallitukseen Swiftistä tuli oikeistopuolueen äänitorvi ja hän alkoi kirjoittaa tory-myönteiseen The Examiner -lehteen vittuilevia kirjoituksia whig-puolueesta. Ezemmonen tuuliviiri se oli, omanvoitonpyyntinen väkkärä, takinkääntäjä.
ellauri247.html on line 408: Käydessään Irlannissa kesällä vuonna 1713 hänet nimitettiin palkkiona rauhan edistämisestä tuomiorovastiksi Pyhän Patrickin tuomiokirkkoon, missä virassa hän toimi koko loppuelämänsä. Swift palasi jo syksyllä Englantiin jatkamaan verolobbausta, tällä kertaa tuloksekkain seurauksin. Swift vetäytyi politiikasta samantien, kun toryjen hallitus kaatui kuningatar Annan kuoleman jälkeen vuonna 1714. Vastentahtoisesti Swift palasi synnyinmaahansa ja St. Patrickin tuomiokirkkoon, mitä hän piti lähinnä maanpakona Englannista, jossa elivät hänen ystävänsä ja rakastajattarensa Esther Vanhomrigh (Vanessa). Vanessa kuitenkin seurasi Swiftiä Dubliniin naimisiin pääsyn toivossa. Swiftin toinenkin rakastettu, ex-sakkoliha Stella, eli myös Dublinissa, mikä laittoi Swiftin vitun hankalaan valintatilanteeseen. Stella kuoli vuonna 1728 ja Swift säilytti hänen karvatupsuaan läpi elämänsä. Esseessään Vaatimaton ehdotus, joka estäisi Irlannin lapsia olemasta taakaksi vanhemmilleen tai maalleen Swift ehdottaa, että Irlannin köyhien lapset tulisi myydä rikkaamman väestönosan ruoaksi. Swift ehdotti tätä ihan vakavalla lärvällä lääkkeexi Irlantia pitkään vaivanneeseen nälänhätään. Jonea ei izeään kyllä nälättänyt, se oli melkoinen pulskiainen.
ellauri247.html on line 471: Who tasting, have robb´d the whole tree? Sille joka förbii koko puun?
ellauri248.html on line 83: Matt rated it shit: If I could, I'd probably rate this at 1.5 stars-- it ultimately pissed me off, and annoyed me throughout, but it was good enough to keep me reading and I suppose that should count for something. Maybe my opinion has been influenced by reading Stieg Larsson's masterful THE GIRL WITH THE DRAGON TATTOO FOR BOYS immediately prior to this one. That book wasn't perfect, but it had characters you rooted for, didn't wallow too much in pop culture references, and most importantly IT SOLVED THE FRIGGING MYSTERY.
ellauri248.html on line 85: Let's go through a few of these points. First, I don't think I've ever read a mystery novel with a less likable main character/narrator. Rob (Adam) Ryan is an asshole, plain and simple. Sure, he's been warped by his childhood and circumstances, but he does just about every annoying thing you could possibly imagine-- he constantly navel-gazes and feels self pity, he sleeps with then immediately plays the stereotypical male "I don't want anything to do with you now" role with his female partner (the person we were told was his best friend, and whom he would never ever sleep with), he acts like an idiot over the 17 year old villain/ temptress/ psychopath/ whatever betraying his partner, and by the end of the book he is worse off than ever. I know that lots of detectives (esp. in hard-boild stories) are unlikable, and have many personal issues, but this guy just took the cake. I wanted to take a baseball bat to his head [hear, hear!]. To make matters worse, French throws in this little gem towards the end of the novel:
ellauri248.html on line 87: "I am intensely aware, by the way, that this story does not show me in a particularly flattering light. I am aware that, within an impressively short time of meeting me, Rosalind had me coming to heel like a well-trained dog: running up and down stairs to bring her coffee, nodding along while she bitched about my partner, imagining like some starstruck teenager that she was a kindred soul. But before you decide to despise me too thoroughly, consider this: she fooled you, too. You had as good a chance as I did. I told you everything I saw, as I saw it at the time. And if that was in itself deceptive, remember, I told you that, too: I warned you, right from the beginning, that I lie." As if that excused anything... and NO, she didn't "fool" me, because YOU'RE the narrator and YOU'RE the one telling the story. This paragraph probably ticked me off more than anything else in the book.
ellauri248.html on line 91: The last part is a bit more controversial I suppose. There are two central mysteries in this book-- the first, what happened to Katy, DOES get solved in the course of the novel (the "big break" in the case is our hero realizing suddenly that the murder probably took place in a shed about 20 feet from where the body was found! Really?? No one bothered to think of that for a month?), but the deeper mystery about what happened to Rob/Adam and his friends is never resolved. Your mileage may vary about how annoying that is. Truth be told, it didn't annoy me as much as the fact that the true "villain" of the modern mystery walks without being punished in any way. How incredibly unsatisfying.
ellauri248.html on line 98: Justin rated it shit: The protagonist of this book really, really annoyed me. It felt like a parody of one of those old black-and-white movies where the picture freezes and the guy steps out toward the camera, lights a cigarette, pulls his hat down, and goes into this long monologue about life or women or his past or whatever. The action would pick up or a new lead would be uncovered, and here comes Rob rambling on for pages and pages.... and pages.
ellauri248.html on line 104: Rob: That is amazing! Great job, Cass!
ellauri248.html on line 106: ::Rob steps toward the camera::
ellauri248.html on line 108: Rob: Yeah, Cassie was like that. She was always finding connections to things and blah blah blah. She made a great partner because hey remember that time 20 years ago when my friends and I were in the woods and blah blah blah I want to tell you about all the people I work with and give you a brief description of each one of them and also explain in detail how my boss is and blah blah blah. My mind is trying to remember what happened 20 years ago and you know Cassie and I are great partners and we're best friends and people think we're dating but blah blah blah. Hey, time flies, man. Did I tell you what happened to me as a child? Did I remind you about Katy? Also, her family sure is weird. The people at the dig site are weird. Everyone is a suspect blah blah blah. Let me pause here to tell you how I deal with my roommate and also O'Kelly and my childhood and my current job and Katy and her weird family and interrogation and coffee and vodka and this dream I had and looking for clues and in the woods and we keep hitting dead ends and and and and and blahhhhhhhhhhhh.
ellauri248.html on line 110: Cassie: Hey, Rob. We have a suspect.
ellauri248.html on line 112: Rob: ... [action]
ellauri248.html on line 114: Nataliya rated it amazing: And it's not the murder story (stories?) but Rob's despair, mistakes, pain, and downward spiral and self-destruction that makes this book so painfully real and fascinating to read.
ellauri248.html on line 115: Rob and Cassie start off enjoying that incredible, intense and yet easy, all-forgiving and natural closeness of a friendship I think every person in the world (non-sociopathic, to be exact) longs for.
ellauri248.html on line 122: Not. One. Thing. Is. Resolved. Rob Ryan’s character arc? Flop. My wife Cassie Maddox’s character arc? Long sigh. My favorite pair of besties? I don’t want to talk about it. Mystery? Fine, sort of chilling, but also 1) not really a mindfuck and 2) has shitty connotations. The commupence? Non-ex-is-tent.
ellauri248.html on line 125: And the worst part? The mystery from twenty years ago that causes this entire fucking BOOK and that was way more interesting than the normal mystery? Literally no fucking resolution. Who did it? How did they do it? What is up with that hair clip in the forest and the blood inside Rob’s shoes? NO ONE FUCKING KNOWS. I’m sure this is framed in the minds of many readers as some kind of deeper meaning about memory. You know what I thought, honestly? Tana French wrote herself into a corner with a fucking ridiculous case and then ran out of time on her deadline and decided to leave it open. [krimi, whodunit]
ellauri248.html on line 131: And I was honestly on the verge of tears after reading the ending and then reading friends' reviews of the second book in this series and discovering that we never get to hear more from Rob. [noir romance]
ellauri248.html on line 148: Paul Rée (* 21. November 1849 in Neu Bartelshagen, Pommern; † 28. Oktober 1901 in Celerina, Schweiz) war ein deutscher empiristischer Philosoph und späterer Arzt.
ellauri248.html on line 158: 1900 gab der Bruder das Gut auf; Paul Rée ging daraufhin nach Celerina (Schweiz) und arbeitete als Arzt für die Einheimischen. Am 28. Oktober 1901 verunglückte er bei einer Bergwanderung und stürzte in den Inn; ob es tatsächlich ein Unglück oder ein Suizid war, kann nicht geklärt werden.
ellauri248.html on line 160: Im Ursprung der moralischen Empfindungen unterteilt er alle Handlungen in „egoistische“ und „unegoistische“; die Ersteren seien ursprünglich verdammt worden, weil sie anderen Menschen schadeten, zweitere aber gelobt, weil sie der Gemeinschaft nützen. Der Grund für diese Bewertung sei, so Rée, vergessen worden, so dass man heute Egoismus für an sich schlecht und Selbstlosigkeit für an sich gut halte.
ellauri248.html on line 175: Malwida von Meysenbug, geboren als Malwida Rivalier (geboren 28. Oktober 1816 in Kassel; gestorben 26. April 1903 in Rom), war eine deutsche Schriftstellerin, die sich auch politisch und als Förderin von Schriftstellern und Künstlern betätigte. Amelie Malwida Wilhelmina Tamina Rivalier wurde 1816 als neuntes von zehn Kindern des kurhessischen Hofbeamten Carl Rivalier (1779–1847) geboren.
ellauri248.html on line 177: Ihr Vater wurde 1825 mit Namensmehrung durch von Meysenbug in den erblichen kurhessischen Adelsstand erhoben, wodurch auch Malwida in den Rang einer Freiin aufstieg. Künstlerische und literarische Anregungen erhielten die Kinder von der Mutter, die sie u. a. mit der Gedankenwelt Friedrich Schlegels und Rahel Varnhagens vertraut machte. Nääkin kuikat on esiintyneet ennenkin.
ellauri248.html on line 191: 1890 lernte Malwida von Meysenbug in Rom den 50 Jahre jüngeren Romain Rolland kennen; er wurde ihr letzter enger Vertrauter und der Briefwechsel ist Zeugnis einer großen Freundschaft. 1903 starb Malwida von Meysenbug in Rom und wurde dort, auf eigenen Wunsch ohne geistliche Begleitung, auf dem Cimitero acattolico an der Cestius-Pyramide beigesetzt. Malwida von Meysenbug war 1901 die erste Frau, die für den Literaturnobelpreis nominiert wurde. Aber mit lautem Gelächter beigesetzt. Tämän kaikkien aikojen ensimmäisen kirjallisuuden dynypalkinnon pokkasi ranskalainen mitättömyys nimeltä Sully Prudhomme, joka sentään oli Ranskan-Saxan sodassa "länkkärien" puolella. Sen runo "Särkynyt korva" löytyy albumista 192.
ellauri248.html on line 242: Daniel in the lions' den (chapter 6 of the Book of Daniel) tells of how the biblical Daniel is saved from lions by the God of Israel "because I was found tasteless before them" (Daniel 6:22). It parallels and complements chapter 3, the story of Shadrach, Meshach, and Abednego: each begins with the jealousy of non-Jews towards successful Jews and an imperial edict requiring them to compromise their religion, and concludes with divine deliverance and a king who confesses the greatness of the God of the Jews and issues an edict of royal protection to the smug hookynoses. The tales making up chapters 1–6 of Daniel date no earlier than the Hellenistic period (3rd to 2nd century BC) and were probably originally independent, but were collected in the mid-2nd century BC and expanded shortly afterwards with the visions of the later chapters to produce the modern book.
ellauri248.html on line 244: In Daniel 6, Daniel is raised to high office by his royal master Darius the Mede. Daniel's jealous rivals trick Darius into issuing a decree that for thirty days no prayers should be addressed to any god or man but Darius himself; anyone who disobeys this edict is to be thrown to the lions. Pious Daniel continues to pray daily to the God of Israel; and the king, although deeply distressed, must condemn Daniel to death, for the edicts of the Medes and Persians cannot be altered. Hoping for Daniel's deliverance, Darius has him cast into the pit. At daybreak the king hurries to the place and cries out anxiously, asking if God had saved his friend. Daniel replies that his God had sent an angel to the jaws of the lions, "because I was found tasteless before them". The king commands that those who had conspired against Daniel be thrown to the poor overfed lions in his place with their tasty wives and children, and that the whole world should tremble and fear before the God of Daniel. Although Daniel is sometimes depicted as a young man in illustrations of the incident, James Montgomery Boice points out that he would have been over eighty years old at the time. No wonder perhaps that he did not entice the lions.
ellauri248.html on line 303: Tammen ja WSOY:n Nobel-sarjassa ilmestyi kolmekymmentä kirjaa vuosien 1976 ja 1977 aikana. Lyriikka-antologiaa Kaksikymmentäyksi Nobel-runoilijaa lukuunottamatta kaikki sarjan nimekkeet olivat uusintapainoksia aiemmin julkaistuista kirjoista. Sarjaan sisältyvät kahden teoksen yhteisniteet ilmestyivät tässä asussa yleensä ensimmäistä kertaa, mutta nämäkin koostuivat aikaisemmin erillisinä ilmestyneistä nimekkeistä. Kaikesta päätellen Nobel-sarjaa ei tarkoitettukaan jatkuvaksi, vaan enemmänkin kertaluonteiseksi paketiksi. Kaksikymmentäyksi Nobel-runoilijaa -valikoimaan laatimassaan esipuheessa sen koonnut Aale Tynni viittaa kirjallisuuspalkinnon lähestyvään 75-vuotispäivään (ensimmäinen palkinto myönnettiin vuonna 1901), joten arvelisin tämän merkkipaalun innoittaneen Tammea ja WSOY:ta ottamaan nobelistiensa teoksista uusia painoksia niiden Nobel-statusta korostaen.
ellauri248.html on line 305: Kaksikymmentäyksi Nobel-runoilijaa. WSOY, 1976
ellauri248.html on line 336: *CHECK = mullontää (ei välttämättä Nobel sarjassa). Jotkut muut olen joskus lukenut mutta olivat niin tylsiä etten ole huolinut. Kyllä näistäkin on jotkut vitun tylsiä.
ellauri248.html on line 347: There was also an allotment process starting in the Dawes Act of 1887 until 1934. This was to force more land from Native people. The ostensible reason was to make them individual landholders and thus “Americanized” members of a capitalist system. It was felt this would “solve” the “Indian problem”. In short that it would make them no longer part of the ethnic communities they were members of. However the main push to “solve” the “problem” was by Anglo-Americans who wanted to take that land. Thus land was distributed to tribal members and the “surplus” was given or sold at a cut rate to White Americans or turned into National Forests and Parks or military bases. Land owned by Native Americans decreased from 138 million acres in 1887 to 48 million acres in 1934. They lost 2/3s of their treaty land base. About 90,000 Native Americans were made landless.
ellauri248.html on line 349: Today there is about 10,059,290 acres (15,700 sq miles) of individually owned lands are still held in trust for Native American allotees and their heirs. There are about four million fractional owner interests in this 10 million acres. Each generation the individual share gets less. One part of the Act was the establishment of a trust fund, administered by the Bureau of Indian Affairs, to collect and distribute revenues from oil, mineral, timber, and grazing leases on Native American lands. The BIA´s grossly mismanaged these funds. They were never collected or lost or stolen. This negligence in the management of the trust fund resulted in a number of lawsuits. The most well known is Cobell v. Salazar which led to a $3.4 billion settlement in 2009. The suit has forced proper accounting of revenues for the future but the settlement gave the litigants cents on the dollar.
ellauri249.html on line 39: MARZIAL
ellauri249.html on line 80: It is precisely in this sense that we should understand Dostoyevsky’s remark that beauty will save the world, or Matthew Arnold’s belief that we shall be saved by poetry. It is probably too late for the world, but for the individual man (me) there always remains a chance. What distinguishes us from other members of the animal kingdom is speech. Literature—and poetry, in particular, my poetry—is, to put it bluntly, the goal of our species.” Minä minä! Täähän on pahempi egosentrikko kuin minä ja pikku-CEC Norjassa.
ellauri249.html on line 108: In a letter Cicero alludes to a number of obscene words, without actually mentioning them. The words which he alludes to but avoids are: cūlus ("arsehole"), mentula ("penis"), cunnus ("cunt"), landīca ("clitoris"), and cōleī ("testicles"). He also objects to words which mean "to fuck", as well as to the Latin word bīnī "two" because for bilingual speakers it sounds like the Greek βινεῖ (bineî) ("he fucks or sodomises", and also to two words for passing wind, vīssiō and pēdō. He does not object to using the word ānus, and says that pēnis, which in his day was obscene, was formerly just a euphemism meaning "tail".
ellauri249.html on line 110: Verpa is also a basic Latin obscenity for "penis", in particular for a penis with the foreskin retracted due to erection and glans exposed, as in the illustration of the god Mercury below. As a result, it was "not a neutral technical term, but an emotive and highly offensive word", most commonly used in despective or threatening contexts of violent acts against a fellow male or rival rather than mere sex (futūtiō "fucking"). It is found frequently in graffiti of the type verpes (= verpa es) quī istuc legēs ("You're a dick you who read this").
ellauri249.html on line 121: Juvenal, showing his knack for describing grossly obscene matters without using taboo words, writes as follows in one of his satires (9.43-4):
ellauri249.html on line 140: The obscure word sōpiō (gen. sōpiōnis) seems to have meant a sexualized caricature with an abnormally large penis, such as the Romans were known to draw. It appears in Catullus 37:
ellauri249.html on line 170: Cicero's Orator (ad Marcum Brutum) §154 confirms its obscene status. Cicero writes:
ellauri249.html on line 172: dīcitur "cum illīs"; "cum autem nōbīs" non dīcitur, sed "nobīscum"; quia sī ita dīcerētur, obscaenius concurrerent litterae.
ellauri249.html on line 173: ("We say cum illīs ("with them"), but we don't say cum nobis ['with us'], but rather nobiscum; because if we said it like that, the letters would run together in a rather obscene way.")
ellauri249.html on line 177: The following obscene poetic graffito from Pompeii is written in the trochaic septenarius metre:
ellauri249.html on line 184: The word cunnilingus occurs in literary Latin, most frequently in Martial; it denotes the person who performs the action, not the action itself as in modern English, where it is not obscene but technical. The term comes from the Latin word for the vulva (cunnus) and the verb "to lick" (lingere, cf. lingua "tongue").
ellauri249.html on line 212: Ukrainassa koittivat levottomat ajat: maa oli välillä itsenäinen Ukrainan kansantasavalta, välillä taas keskusvaltojen miehittämä ja jälleen itsenäinen valtio. Hruštšov mobilisoitiin puna-armeijaan vuoden 1918 lopussa tai 1919 alussa. Armeijassa hän yleni pienen puoluesolun esimiehestä 9. armeijan poliittisen osaston kouluttajaksi. Sanottavaa sotamenestystä hänellä ei ollut. Onpas kitkerää textiä!
ellauri249.html on line 265: Ukrainassa, erityisesti sen länsiosissa, oli vuonna 1944 kansallismielisiä partisaanijoukkoja, jotka taistelivat maan itsenäisyyden puolesta. Ukrainan kommunistisen puolueen politbyroo sähkötti maaliskuussa 1945, että joukkojen toiminta oli lopetettu. Todellisuudessa sota niitä vastaan jatkui 1950-luvulle saakka. Sota oli raaka, ja kumpikin osapuoli syyllistyi hirvittäviin julmuuksiin. Vuosina 1945–1952 puna-armeija sai vangiksi 600 000 ”valkobandiittia” joista kolmasosa surmattiin ja loput vietiin vankileireille tai ajettiin maanpakoon. Partisaanit taas surmasivat vangeiksi saamansa vastustajat hitaasti kiduttamalla. Hruštšovin tehtävänä oli johtaa kommunistien salaista poliisia ja hänelle ominainen suorasukaisuus vei hänet keskelle tapahtumia. Hän kehotti kirjeessään Stalinille, että ”valkobandiitteja” ei laitettaisi oikeuteen, vaan heidät surmattaisiin heti tavattaessa. Ongelmia aiheuttivat myös aseistetut kirkonmiehet, jotka äänekkäästi puolustivat kansaa viranomaisten mielivaltaa vastaan.
ellauri249.html on line 305: China will overtake the US as the world’s biggest economy before the end of the decade after outperforming its rival during the global Covid-19 pandemic, according to a report.
ellauri249.html on line 310: Hruštšovin ja Bulganinin palattua Suomesta kesäkuussa 1957 heidät yritettiin syrjäyttää. Presidium vaati ensimmäisen puoluesihteerin, Hruštšovin, vaihtamista. Esille otettiin syytöksenä se, että Hruštšov oli ollut nuorena trotskilainen ja se, että hän käyttäytyi tehtävänsä arvolle sopimattomalla tavalla. Hän kutsui nopeasti koolle koko keskuskomitean ja teki yrityksen tyhjäksi. Malenkov, Kaganovitš ja Šepilov menettivät ministerin paikkansa. Heidän tilalleen keskuskomiteaan nousivat Leonid Brežnev ja ehdokasjäsen Aleksei Kosygin. Hankkeessa mukana ollut Molotov siirrettiin suurlähettilääksi Mongoliaan, missä hänellä ei ollut käytännössä muuta tekemistä kuin lähestyä Hruštšovia kirjeillä, joissa arvosteli ankarasti tämän tekemiä ratkaisuja. Malenkov lähettiin Kazkstanin syrjäseudulle Ekobastuzin kaupunkiin, jossa viranomaiset valvoivat hänen kaikkia liikkeitään. Kaganovitš pelkäsi henkensä puolesta ja anoi Hruštšovilta armoa. Hänet lähetettiin Solikamskiin johtamaan kaliumkarbonaattitehdasta. Šepilov lähetettiin Kirgisiaan johtamaan talousinstituuttia. Noloa.
ellauri249.html on line 409: Kyseenalaisia sankareita kaiken kaikkiaan, esimtää "bloody eye" Skobelev edellisessä Krimin sodassa. Skobelev returned to Turkestan after the war, and in 1880 and 1881 further distinguished himself by retrieving the disasters inflicted by the Tekke Turkomans: following the Siege of Geoktepe, it was stormed, the general captured the fort. Around 8,000 Turkmen soldiers and civilians, including women and children were slaughtered in a bloodbath in their flight, along with an additional 6,500 who died inside the fortress. The Russians massacre included all Turkmen males in the fortress who had not escaped, but they spared some 5,000 women and children and freed 600 Persian slaves. The defeat at Geok Tepe and the following slaughter broke the Turkmen resistance and decided the fate of Transcaspia, which was annexed to the Russian Empire. The great slaughter proved too much to stomach reducing the Akhal-Tekke country to submission. Skobelev was removed from his command because of the massacre. He was advancing on Ashkhabad and Kalat i-Nadiri when he was disavowed and recalled to Moscow. He was given the command at Minsk. The official reason for his transfer to Europe was to appease European public opinion over the slaughter at Geok Tepe. British Field Marshal Bernard Montgomery assessed Skobelev as the world's "best single commander" between 1870 and 1914 and wrote of his "skilful and inspiring" leadership. Francis Vinton Greene also rated Skobelev highly.
ellauri249.html on line 413: Geok Tepe (Turkmen: Гөкдепе, romanized: Gökdepe, "Blue Hills") is a city in and the administrative center of Gökdepe District, Ahal province, Turkmenistan, east of the Caspian See. Eventually, the defenders, and the 40,000 civilians inside the fort, fled across the desert, pursued by General Skobelev's cavalry. Around 8,000 Turkmen soldiers and civilians died while fleeing, adding to 6,500 who had died in the fort. Russian casualties were 398 killed and 669 wounded. Typical numbers with technological supremacy.
ellauri249.html on line 472: Its origin is set down in Pliny the Elder's Naturalis Historia where he records that a shoemaker (sutor) had approached the painter Apelles of Kos to point out a defect in the artist's rendition of a sandal (crepida from Greek krepis), which Apelles duly corrected. Encouraged by this, the shoemaker then began to enlarge on other defects he considered present in the painting, at which point Apelles advised him that ne supra crepidam sutor iudicaret ('a shoemaker should not judge beyond the shoe'), which advice, Pliny observed, had become a proverbial saying. The Renaissance interest in meddling cluelessly into other people's affairs made the expression popular again.
ellauri249.html on line 474: The saying remains popular in several languages, as in the English "A cobbler should stick to his last", the Dutch Schoenmaker, blijf bij je leest, the Danish Skomager, bliv ved din læst, the German Schuster, bleib bei deinen Leisten, and the Polish Pilnuj, szewcze, kopyta. Other languages use slightly changed forms: the Spanish Zapatero, a tus zapatos ('Shoemaker, [tend] to your shoes'), and the Russian Суди, дружок, не свыше сапога ('Judge not, pal, above the boot'), after Alexander Pushkin's poetic retelling of the legend.
ellauri249.html on line 480: HBL:s krigexpert grunnar så här: Det går förstås inte att tala om en eskalation, då Ukraina attackerar strategiska mål inne i Ryssland. Det är ett helt berättigat svar på Rysslands angrepp mot civila mål och civil infrastruktur i Ukraina. Berättigad eskalation är ingen eskalation. Mick Ryan, general i avsked från Australiens militär, skriver i sin l blogg att attackerna var en politisk nödvändighet för att visa att Ukraina försvarar sin civilbefolkning mot de ryska robotattackerna. Enligt Ryan är det också givet att attackerna inom ryskt territorium godkändes personligen av Ukrainas standup president Volodymyr Zelenskyj. för Zelenskyj har upprepade gånger bett om mera hjälp av västländerna så Ukraina kan eskalera kriget till ryskt territorium. Det är hög tid at få åstad en fullskalad beväpnad konflikt mellan Ryssland och NATO, såsnart de snärtiga nordliga länderna är färdiga med at slicka rumpan på Erdogan.
ellauri254.html on line 51: Fedinin ensimmäiset teokset ilmestyivät vuosina 1913–1914. Vuonna 1921 hän liittyi pietarilaiseen Serapion-veljien kirjailijaryhmään. Fedinin varhaiset kertomukset ja ensimmäinen romaani, sivistyneistön kohtaloita vallankumouksen ja kansalaissodan aikana kuvaava Goroda i gody (”Kaupunkeja ja vuosia”, 1924) ovat tyyliltään kokeilevia. Myöhemmät teokset noudattavat sosialistisen realismin kaanoneita. Romaanit Ensimmäiset ilot (Pervyje radosti, 1945) ja Neobyknovennoje leto (”Epätavallinen kesä”, 1947–1948) saivat Stalin-palkinnon. Kirjailijan viimeinen romaani Nuotio (Kostjor, 1961–1965) jäi keskeneräiseksi. Hän on laatinut myös sarjan kirjailijakuvauksia Pisatel, iskusstvo, vremja (”Kirjailija, taide, aika”, 1957, 1961) sekä muistelmateoksen Gorki ja me (Gorki sredi nas, 1941–1968).
ellauri254.html on line 60: ETA Hoffmanista on mulla jo nippu linkkejä. German storywriter E.T.A. Hoffmann appears to have suffered and died from tabes dorsalis. Eli kuppaan kuoli tämä kaveri. Se väsäsi sen Nussknackerin, joulukuusen koristeen jonka sain Berliinistä Shanshanilta, johon "siitä vaan sano" Zhaikovski teki musiikin. Varsin mitätön Gerard de Nerval (salanimi) esitteli saksankielistä kirjallisuutta Ranskassa, muun muassa esikuvaansa E. T. A. Hoffmannia sekä J. W. von Goetheä. Nobel-Olga Tokarczukin Izidorkin kaipasi aakkosten alkupäästä Hoffmannia.
ellauri254.html on line 63: Die Serapionsbrüder ist eine 1819 bis 1821 veröffentlichte Sammlung von Erzählungen und Aufsätzen von E.T.A. Hoffmann. Hoffmann stellte die vier Bände zu großen Teilen aus bereits vorher veröffentlichtem Material zusammen, fügte aber einige neue Erzählungen sowie eine Rahmenhandlung hinzu, in der einige literarisch gebildete Freunde über Probleme der Kunst diskutieren und als fiktive Autoren der Erzählungen auftreten. Vorbild für diesen Freundeskreis waren die Treffen der Serapionsbrüder, eines literarischen Kreises um Hoffmann, dem neben weiteren Schriftstellern auch Adelbert von Chamisso und Friedrich de la Motte Fouqué angehörten. Der Name leitete sich ursprünglich vom Heiligen Serapion her, an dessen Gedenktag – dem 14. November – der Freundeskreis sich zum ersten Mal nach längerer Trennung im Jahr 1818 wieder zusammenfand. Wichtiger als dieser äußere Anlass wird aber das sogenannte serapiontische Prinzip, dem sich die Mitglieder des Kreises verpflichtet fühlen.
ellauri254.html on line 327: Njeuvostoliiton ensimmäinen ja viimeinen presidentti oli läikkäozainen Mihail Gorbazov. Gorbatšovin uudistuspyrkimykset, joista käytettiin nimityksiä perestroika (”uudelleenrakentaminen”) ja glasnost (”avoimuus”), johtivat liennytykseen ja vaikuttivat kylmän sodan päättymiseen, mistä hän sai Nobelin rauhanpalkinnon, mutta samalla Neuvostoliiton kommunistinen puolue menetti aikaisemman poliittisen valta-asemansa, mikä lopulta aiheutti Neuvostoliiton hajoamisen. Gorbatšov levytti 2009 vaimonsa Raisa Gorbatšovan lempilauluja. Erittäin komiasti lauloi. Vuonna 2014 osana Ukrainan vallankumousta Venäjällä ryhmä kansanedustajia yhdisti Ukrainan ongelmat Neuvostoliiton hajoamiseen ja vaati tutkimaan syyllistyikö Gorbatšov maanpetokseen 1980-luvulla, kun Neuvostoliitto hajosi. Kyllä syyllistyi. Senhän voi päätellä jo siitäkin että se sai siitä dynamiittipalkinnon. Gorbazovin persetroikka hajosi, ja siinä samalla viimeinen toivo kominternista.
ellauri254.html on line 371: Merezhkovsky's wife, Zinaida Gippius, also a major poet in the early days of the symbolist movement - together with the ultimately deceased Ivan Konevskoy and Aleksandr Dobrolyubov part of the so-called metaphysical symbolists - opened a hair salon in Saint Petersburg, which came to be known as the "headquarters of Russian decadence". (Head, hehehe. Head and hind quarters, I bet.)
ellauri254.html on line 401: ‘To my great dismay, today I discovered that your tail came from my perineum (actually not mine, someone else’s – that’s the problem!). Moreover, I cannot find the rear paws. Have they really been cut off? Where shall I look for them? I await your reply. I’ve taken the skin to be fixed – but how ever can I return it with patches?’
ellauri254.html on line 457: George wurde als Sohn des Gastwirts und Weinhändlers Stephan George und dessen Frau Eva (geb. Schmitt) in Büdesheim (bei Bingen) geboren. Die Familie stammte ursprünglich aus dem seit 1766 zu Frankreich gehörenden Roupeldange. Der Bruder von Georges Urgroßvater Jacob (1774–1833), Johann Baptist George (Grab in Büdesheim), war von hier nach Büdesheim gezogen und hatte (da selbst kinderlos) als Erben Georges Großvater Anton (1808–1888; Soldat unter Karl X.) sowie dessen Bruder Etienne (den späteren Politiker) zu sich geholt. Stefan George galt als verschlossenes, eigenbrötlerisches Kind, das schon früh zur Selbstherrlichkeit neigte. Ach ja! das heisst Narzissismus bei Freud.
ellauri254.html on line 467: Der geistige Umgang der beiden dauerte dennoch fast 15 Jahre an, wobei George immer die Rolle des bestimmenden älteren Freundes einnahm. Gleichwohl wehrte sich Hofmannsthal, bei aller Hochschätzung der dichterischen Genialität Georges, gegen die persönliche Vereinnahmung durch ihn und seinen Kreis. Aus dieser Zeit stammt ein intensiver Briefwechsel. Hofmannsthal stellte in seinem Gespräch über Gedichte (1903) das berühmte, aus dem Jahr der Seele stammende Gedicht vor, mit dem George diesen Zyklus einleitet:
ellauri254.html on line 488: Ab 1907 ist eine Zäsur in Georges Kunstbegriff zu erkennen. Seine Werke entsprachen nicht mehr dem Anspruch der sogenannten selbstgenügsamen Kunst, sondern gewannen zunehmend einen prophetischen und religiösen Charakter. Fortan fungierte George zunehmend als ästhetischer Richter oder Ankläger, der gegen eine Zeit der Verflachung anzukämpfen versuchte. Anlass hierzu war vor allem die Begegnung Georges mit dem vierzehnjährigen Maximilian Kronberger 1902 in München. Nach dem plötzlichen Tod Kronbergers 1904 an Arschverblütung stellte George ein Gedenkbuch zusammen, das 1906 mit einer Vorrede erschien, in der „Maximin“ (so nennt ihn George) zum Gott erhoben wurde, der „in unsere Kreise getreten war“. Inwiefern dieser „Maximin-Kult“ tatsächlich ein gemeinsamer des Kreises war oder eher ein privater Georges, der dadurch, dass er die Göttlichkeit Maximins erkannt hatte, seine eigene zentrale Stellung rechtfertigen wollte, ist schwierig zu rekonstruieren. Minimax olis ollut turvallisempi strategia, kuiten von Neumann ja Morgenstern ovat osoittaneet. Maxi muna miniin reikään tuottaa vahinkoa, mini muna maxissa reiässä ei ehkä paljon anna, muttei otakaan.
ellauri254.html on line 499: Siinä oli meitä poikia. Stefun ikävä lätty näkyy näpeimpänä pisteenä taulun oikeassa ylänurkassa. Pullanaamainen Brando lookalike vauvaessussa on Schwuler ja dinaarinen pikkumies Klages. Koukkunokka vasemmassa laidassa on syväkurkkuinen Karl Wolfskehl, joka sittemmin ajoi pois röyhypartansa kuten Soologubbe. Toinen partapozo ei ole sikapaska Hongisto eikä vekkulin Volvon etulokasuoja vaan Albert Verwey Amsterdamista joka ei saanut Nobel-palkintoa. Verwey was a close friend of Willem Kloos, and an affair developed between the two poets, which is unprecedented in Dutch literature. Siinä ehkä syy.
ellauri254.html on line 505: In uniting his philosophy and personal preferences, Klages generally opposed sexuality as a formal concept. Mitä vetoa että Ludi oli bi? Even during the heyday of sexual and bohemian rebellion, Herf writes, "Klages struck most observers as strikingly clean and honourable in erotic matters."
ellauri254.html on line 598: Avvakum toimi vuonna 1652 esipappina Jurjevetsissa ja sittemmin Moskovan Kazanin katedraalin pappina. Hän vastusti jyrkästi patriarkka Nikonin uudistuksia, minkä takia hänet vuonna 1653 karkotettiin Tobolskiin ja Venäjän Kaukoitään. Vuonna 1663 tsaari Aleksei Mihailovitš kutsui Avvakumin takaisin Moskovaan. Hän ei kuitenkaan luopunut näkemyksistään, vaan jatkoi taistelua kirkon uudistuksia vastaan ja sai paljon kannattajia. Vuonna 1664 Avvakum karkotettiin Mezeniin. Vuonna 1667 hänet kutsuttiin Moskovaan. Kirkolliskokouksessa Avvakumilta riistettiin papinvirka, jätettiin pelekkä tybeteikka, hänet tuomittiin kirkonkiroukseen ja karkotettiin Pustozjorskin linnoitukseen. Siellä hän vietti 15 vuotta maakuoppaan rakennetussa hirsisalvoksessa. Pustozjorskissa Avvakum jatkoi kirjallista toimintaansa ja kamppailua virallista kirkkoa vastaan. Vuonna 1682 Avvakum lähimpine tovereineen poltettiin hirsisalvoxeen tsaarin määräyksestä.
ellauri254.html on line 699: Kamenev rehabilitoitiin Mihail Gorbatšovin kaudella vuonna 1988. Siitä näkee heti millainen revari Rozenberg oikeastaan oli. Ben Zyskovizin heimolaisia. Kas kun ei saanut Nobel palkintoa.
ellauri254.html on line 823: Shklovsky returned to St. Petersburg in early 1918, after the October Revolution. During the Civil War he opposed Bolshevism and took part in an anti-Bolshevik plot organised by members of the Socialist-Revolutionary Party. After the conspiracy was discovered by the Cheka, Shklovsky went into hiding, traveling in Russia and the Ukraine, but was eventually pardoned in 1919 due to his connections with Maxim Gorky, and decided to abstain from political activity. His two brothers were executed by the Soviet regime (one in 1918, the other in 1937) and his sister died from hunger in St. Petersburg in 1919.
ellauri256.html on line 46: Rozanov frequently referred to himself as Fyodor Dostoyevsky's "Underground Man" and proclaimed his right to espouse contrary opinions at the same time. He first attracted attention in the 1890s when he published political sketches in the conservative newspaper Novoye Vremya ("New Time"), owned and run by Aleksey Suvorin. Rozanov's comments, always paradoxical and sparking controversy, led him into clashes with the Tsarist government and with radicals such as Lenin. For example, Rozanov readily passed from criticism of Russian Orthodoxy, and even of what he saw as the Christian preoccupation with death, to fervent praise of Christian faith, from praise of Judaism to unabashed anti-Semitism, and from acceptance of homosexuality as yet another side of human nature to vitriolic accusations that Gogol and some other writers had been latent homosexuals.[citation needed] He proclaimed that politics was "obsolete" because "God doesn't want politics any more," constructed an "apocalypse of our times," and recommended the "healthy instincts" of the Russian people, their longing for authority, and their hostility to modernism.
ellauri256.html on line 86: Yöllä he nukkuivat teltoissa, sytyttivät tulet leirin ympärillä. Ja aamulla he jatkoivat nälkäisinä ja vihaisina. Heitä oli monia: kuka voi laskea Jaakobin hiekan ja Israelin joukon? Ja jokainen toi mukanaan karjansa, vaimonsa ja lapsensa. Oli kuuma ja pelottava. Ja päivällä se oli kauheampaa kuin yöllä, koska päivällä oli valoa sillä kultaisella ja tasaisella valolla, joka muuttumattomuudessaan on pimeämpi kuin yön pimeys.
ellauri256.html on line 197: We are always obedient to the Torah. Pääsiäinen on orankijuutalaisten kielellä Paskah. Paskah auttaa koronaan.
ellauri256.html on line 242: ob-andree-belom-e1542008819626.jpg" width="20%" />
ellauri256.html on line 246: Boris Nikolaevich Bugaev (Russian: Бори́с Никола́евич Буга́ев, IPA: [bɐˈrʲis nʲɪkɐˈlajɪvʲɪtɕ bʊˈɡajɪf] (listen)), better known by the pen name Andrei Bely or Biely (Russian: Андре́й Бе́лый, IPA: [ɐnˈdrʲej ˈbʲelɨj] (listen); 26 October [O.S. 14 October] 1880 – 8 January 1934), was a Russian novelist, Symbolist poet, theorist and literary critic. He was a committed anthroposophist and follower of Rudolf Steiner. His novel Petersburg (1913/1922) was regarded by Vladimir Nabokov as the third-greatest masterpiece of modernist literature. The Andrei Bely Prize (Russian: Премия Андрея Белого), one of the most important prizes in Russian literature, was named after him. His poems were set to music and performed by Russian singer-songwriters.
ellauri256.html on line 336: Vladimir Vladimirovich Mayakovsky was born in 1893 in Baghdati, Kutais Governorate, Georgia, then part of the Russian Empire, to Alexandra Alexeyevna (née Pavlenko), a housewife, and Vladimir Mayakovsky, a local forester. His father belonged to a noble family and was a distant relative of the writer Grigory Danilevsky. Vladimir Vladimirovich had two sisters, Olga and Lyudmila, and a brother Konstantin, who died at the age of three. The family was of Russian and Zaporozhian Cossack descent on their father's side and Ukrainian on their mother's.
ellauri256.html on line 358: The stormy affair between the legendary “singer of the revolution”, Vladimir Mayakovsky, and a “proponent of depravity”, Lilya Brik, lasted 15 years, until the poet's suicide in 1930. He devoted poems and hundreds of love letters to her. It was probably this affair that most of all contributed to her going down in history, yet it also left her with hundreds of enemies, who tried to erase any trace of her, even from documents. So, who exactly was this femme fatale?
ellauri256.html on line 370: The well-off Osip even offered to finance the publication of the poem - he became a kind of a promoter for Mayakovsky. In the meantime, Lilya started working on the poet's image like Pipsa on E. Saarinen: she made him change his brightly-coloured cubo-futuristic robes for a coat and formal suit and have his teeth done. In other words, there were three of them in that relationship.
ellauri256.html on line 518: Boris Sidis (/ˈsaɪdɪs/; October 12, 1867 – October 24, 1923) was a Ukrainian immigrant Jewish psychologist, physician, psychiatrist, and philosopher of education. Sidis studied under William James at Harvard, made 4 degrees, and founded the New York State Psychopathic Institute and the Journal of Abnormal Psychology. He sought to provide insight into why people behave as they do, particularly in cases of a mob frenzy or religious mania. He vigorously applied the principles of Darwinian evolution to the study of psychology. He saw fear as an underlying cause of much human mental suffering and problematic behavior. Boris Sidis opposed mainstream psychology and Sigmund Freud, and thereby died ostracized. Sidis himself derided himself as "silly, pedantic, absurd, and grossly misleading." He later credited his ability to think to his long solitary confinement in Ukraina. Sidis sr died estranged from Sidis jr on October 24, 1923, at the age of 56.
ellauri256.html on line 522: Billy's IQ varied between 200 and 300, depending on who said it. After receiving much publicity for his childhood feats, William James jr came to live an eccentric unillustrious life and died in relative obscurity.
ellauri256.html on line 524: MIT:n silloinen laskuopin professori ennusti Billystä: I believe he will be a great mathematician, the leader in that science in the future. 11-vuotiaana nenäkäs Billy sai toistuvasti turpiin 5v vanhemmilta Harvardin luokkatovereilta (ml Buckminster Fuller) ja alkoi eristäytyä. Billy vowed to remain celibate and never to marry, as he said women did not appeal to him. Later he developed a strong affection for Martha Foley, one year older than him. Ei siitäkään tullut lasta eikä paskaakaan. Isompana Billy ajoi mieluiten ympäriinsä raitiovaunulla. He obsessively collected streetcar transfers, wrote self-published periodicals, and taught small circles of interested friends his version of American history. Sidis arveli että Euroopassakin oli ollut intiaaneja. Sidis peukutti jonkinlaista dualismia. Sidis died from a cerebral hemorrhage in 1944 in Boston at age 46.
ellauri256.html on line 526: Martha Foley was born in Boston, Massachusetts, on March 21, 1897, to Walter and Margaret M. C. Foley. From 1909 to 1915, she attended Boston Girls' Latin School, and even then aspired to be a writer. The school magazine published her first short story, "Jabberwock," when she was eleven years old. (I had thought it was Lewis Carrol's.) After graduating from the 'Girls School' she attended Boston University but did not graduate, unlike Riitta Roth, who did. The topic of her MA thesis was Garten-Laub. The name of her kitten was Klobürste. (Riitta's, not Martha's)
ellauri256.html on line 528: Before getting married, she (Martha) was a companion of noted former child and prodigy William James Sidis and the object of his unrequited love. Her magazine Story is credited with the first publication and early support of a pantheon of notable authors, including: John Cheever, Carson McCullers, William Saroyan, Truman Capote, Norman Mailer, and such as J. D. Salinger, Tennessee Williams and Richard Wright.
ellauri257.html on line 69: British-born director J. Lee Thompson (“The Yellow Balloon”/”The Passage”/”King Solomon’s Mines”) helms this bloody spectacular. It’s a serviceable large-scale epic that mainly goes wrong with a mushy subplot involving a miscast Tony Curtis as a Cossack wooing a Polish noblewoman, Christine Kaufmann (they were soon to be married in real-life after his divorce from Janet Leigh). It seems to be in genre form when showing hordes of Cossack horsemen flying across the steppes to do battle. It’s based on the novel by Nikolai Gogol and is written without wit or logic by Waldo Salt (former blacklisted writer) and Karl Tunberg.
ellauri257.html on line 73: The cocky and arrogant Taras raises two sons, Andrei (Tony Curtis) and Ostap (Perry Lopez), and eventually sends them to Kiev University to learn how their enemies think. The independent-minded Andrei falls in love with Natalia (Christine Kaufmann), a young beautiful Polish noblewoman, but her family deems him unworthy of her because of his lowly birth. The heartbroken Andrei returns home to the steppes and his bloodthirsty barbarian warrior father—definitely not a college grad.
ellauri257.html on line 120: Vuosien 1830–1831 marraskuun kansannousun jälkeen Venäjän keisarillista hallintoa vastaan Puolan ydinalueella – jaettu vuodesta 1795 – Puolan kansa joutui tsaarin viranomaisten virallisen syrjintäkampanjan kohteeksi. "Käytännössä koko Venäjän hallitus, byrokratia ja yhteiskunta yhdistyivät yhdeksi purskahdeksi puolalaisia vastaan. Yhteiskuntaan tarttunut fobia antoi uuden voimakkaan sysäyksen Venäjän kansalliselle solidaarisuusliikkeelle" - kirjoitti historioitsija Liudmila Gatagova . Juuri tässä nimenomaisessa kontekstissa monet Venäjän kirjallisista teoksista ja sen ajan suosituista tiedotusvälineistä tulivat vihamielisiksi puolalaisia kohtaan valtion politiikan mukaisesti, varsinkin panslavistisen ideologian ilmaantumisen jälkeensyyttäen heitä "slaavilaisen perheen" pettämisestä. Sosiologin ja historioitsijan prof Vilho Harlen mukaan Taras Bulba , joka julkaistiin vain neljä vuotta kapinan jälkeen, oli osa tätä Puolan vastaista propagandatyötä. Epähuomiossa Gogolin saavutuksesta tuli "Puolan vastainen romaani, jolla on korkeat kirjalliset ansiot, puhumattakaan vähäisemmistä kirjailijoista".
ellauri257.html on line 133: Vapauduttuaan maaorjuudesta Karl Brjullovin järjestämillä arpajaisilla Ševtšenko opiskeli Pietarin taideakatemiassa, jossa hänen opettajanaan toimi samainen Karl Brjullov. Ševtšenko alkoi myös elättää itseään taidemaalarina ja runoilijana. Vuonna 1840 ilmestyi Ševtšenkon ensimmäinen runokokoelma Kobzar. Vuonna 1841 julkaistiin edelleen eeppinen runo Haidamaky ja vuonna 1844 balladi Hamaliia. Vuosina 1843, 1845 ja 1846 Ševtšenko teki matkoja sukulaistensa luo Ukrainaan, jossa hän sai porsasborshtshia ja vaikutteita ukrainalaisilta kirjailijoilta ja muulta älymystöltä. Ševtšenko tutustui esimerkiksi Panteleimon Kulišiin, Myhailo Maksymovytšiin ja Varvara Repninaan. Ševtšenko valmistui Pietarin taideakatemiasta vuonna 1845, ja kiertäessään samana vuonna Ukrainaa hän kirjoitti runoja, tuhri graffitilla paikallisia historiallisia maamerkkejä ja käänsi museoista kansatieteellistä aineistoa.
ellauri257.html on line 334: obzars_Kravchenko_Dremchenko.jpg" />
ellauri257.html on line 341: Hän oli vuonna 1966 ehdolla Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon saajaksi, mutta ei kuitenkaan saanut palkintoa. Actually he was nominated for the Nobel Prize in Literature four times, from 1966 to 1969. Eise sentään ollut Puolan juutalaisia vaikka painui Argentiinaan karkuroimaan 1939. Actually he was considered unfit for military duties. No jotain vikaa siinä piti olla, ja olikin: Gombrowicz had affairs with both men and women.
ellauri257.html on line 362: Gombroviczin päiväkirja alkaa: „Montag: Ich. Dienstag: Ich. Mittwoch: Ich. Donnerstag: Ich.“ Der polnische Schriftsteller Witold Gombrowicz machte die Egomanie zu seinem literarischen Prinzip. Die Tagebücher strotzen erst recht vor intimen Selbstbetrachtungen. Es geht um sein Sexleben, sein Streben nach Ruhm, aber auch um seine Magen- und Darmprobleme.
ellauri257.html on line 369: Ende 1968, kurz vor seinem Tod, notiert er: „Stark gewachsenes Prestige, der Nobelpreis in greifbarer Nähe.“
ellauri257.html on line 378: Veikkaan viimemainittua. Mixi ylipäänsä pitää julkaista tälläsiä pornokirjoja? Kiihottumista ja himoa. Elukkamaista. Kuvitteellista puuhastelua Puolan nuorten parissa. Nobel-palkinto on aivan huulilla. Jag, en polsk författare, jag, Gombrowicz.
ellauri257.html on line 389: My main beef with Peterson is not with his overall philosophy, although I don’t personally vibe with his “life is suffering” Christian stoicism at all, what I find objectionable is his complete laziness and lack of rigour in political theory.
ellauri257.html on line 419: Upon the 2009 American release (of the book, after the film of course, this is America), Michael Dirda wrote in The Washington Post that Pornografia "seems as sick, as pathologically creepy a novel as one is ever likely to read. In some ways, it resembles a rather more polymorphously perverse version of Les Liaisons Dangereuses or one of those disturbing fictions by European intellectuals that blend the philosophical with the erotic: Think of Georges Bataille's The Story of the Eye or Pierre Klossowski's Roberte Ce Soir. ... Through its sado-masochistic material and its almost Henry Jamesian analyses of human motives, Pornografia underscores Gombrowicz's lifelong philosophical obsession: the quest for authenticity." Dirda continued: "Certainly, most readers will find Pornografia perturbing, or worse: repulsive, confusing, ugly. As Milosz once said of Gombrowicz: 'He had no reverence whatsoever for literature. He derided it as a snobbish ritual, and if he practiced it, he attempted to get rid of all its accepted rules.'"
ellauri257.html on line 458: “They haven’t turned up yet. They just send a lot of money and weapons and let the Ukrainians supply the manpower and fill the body bags. Fewer Western casualties this way. The concept has been tested in countless local wars all round the globe."
ellauri257.html on line 491: Isaac Bashevis Singer, salanimi Varshofsky (jidd. יצחק באַשעװיס זינגער, alun perin Icek-Hersz Zynger; 21. marraskuuta 1902 Leoncin, Varsova, Kongressi-Puola, silloista Venäjää – 24. heinäkuuta 1991 Miami, Florida) oli puolanjuutalainen kirjailija. Hän sai Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon vuonna 1978. Singer tunnetaan ennen kaikkea novelleistaan (joita en ole lukenut, vaan sen romskuja).
ellauri257.html on line 506: In the United States, Singer went through a period of depression in which he published little fiction, until in 1938, he met Alma Wasserman and the two married in 1940. For Singer as homo domesticus, I needed the views of his wife, Alma Haimann, whom I’ll refer to by her first name hereafter. I had read in a 1970s article from The Jewish Exponent that Alma had been at work on an autobiography. “I’m about as far as the first 100 pages,” she told the Philadelphia newspaper. I was also aware, from Paul Kresh’s 1979 biography, “The Magician of West 86th Street,” that Singer didn’t think his wife would ever finish the manuscript. But was there such a manuscript?
ellauri257.html on line 548: Lopulta Israel Joshua kutsui nuoremman veljensä, tulevan Nobel-palkinnon voittajan Isaac Bashevis Singerin Yhdysvaltoihin ja suunnitteli hänelle työpaikan The Forwardissa. "Ellei Joshuaa olisi ollut, Abraham Cahan olisi erottanut hänet", Singerin vaimo Genia tunnusti myöhemmin Bashevisin pojalle Israel Zamirille. Joshua kuoli sydänkohtaukseen 50-vuotiaana New Yorkissa, 258 Hudson Riverside Drive, 10. helmikuuta 1944. A Treasury of Yiddish Stories -kirjan johdannossa Irving Howe ja Eliezer Greenberg totesivat, että Mr. Singerin kirjat on järjestetty "tavalla, joka täyttää tavanomaiset länsimaiset odotukset kirjallisen rakenteen suhteen. Hänen romaaninsa muistuttavat sellaista perhekronikkaa, joka oli suosittu Euroopassa useita vuosikymmeniä sitten eli edellisen vuosisadan vaihteessa.
ellauri258.html on line 116: Aivan käsittämätöntä pullistelua nobelistien eturivissä.
ellauri258.html on line 124: Okei. Global Dignity on Norjan prinssi Haakonin ja sosiaalisen investointipankin perustaneen Operation Hopen John Bryantin kanssa perustamasi hanke. Puhutaan siitä.
ellauri258.html on line 152: "Lapsille ja lapsenlapsille arvokkaampaa maailmaa rakentaneen mummoni perintö. Hänen työnsä jatkuu Dignity-projektissa, joka poikii mielenkiintoisia hankkeita. Mua pyydettiin puheenjohtajaksi arvomaailman ja henkisen maailman murrosta kartoittavaan Global Redesign -analyysiin, jossa on mukana nobelisteja ja maailman johtavia tiede- ja taidetyyppejä."
ellauri258.html on line 156: "Aistin tilanteessa tiettyä absurdiutta, varsinkin jos paikalla on useita nobelisteja! Toisaalta olen aina ollut kiinnostunut puhumistani asioista niin, että esiintyessäni kaikki muu katoaa. Olen täysillä läsnä."
ellauri258.html on line 168: "Hillaryssa minut yllätti hauskuus. Bill ja Hillary ovat tosissaan liikkeellä paremman maailman puolesta. Se ei ole helppoa, koska vastavoimia riittää, mutta eivät he aio antaa periksi. Palaan vielä Dignityyn. Hankkeessa on mukana kaikki tasot. Iso, globaalien, todella isojen kysymysten taso, jossa liikutaan esimerkiksi ilmastonmuutoksessa ja maailmassa vallitsevassa arvonannon kuilussa. Jos länsimaissa kuolisi joka päivä 50 000 ihmistä, täällä julistettaisiin hätätila, ja maailma mobilisoitaisiin estämään katastrofi. Ongelma on siinä, ettemme anna samaa arvoa kaikille ihmisille vaan annamme noiden 50 000:n kuolla kaikessa hiljaisuudessa. Globaalitason ohella yhtä tärkeä on mikrotaso, missä jokainen ihminen voi toimia. Hienoimmat kokemani arvonannon osoitukset eivät liity julkkiksiin, vaan tavallisiin ihmisiin. Mummoni on minulle esimerkki."
ellauri258.html on line 325: Baba-Yaga ( venäläinen Yaga, Yaga-Baba, Egi-Baba, Yagaya, Yagishna, Yagabova, Egiboba ; Valkovenäjän Baba-Yaga, Baba-Yuga, Yaginya ; Bulgarian Baba Yaga ; Ukrainan Baba-Yazya, Iazya, Yazi -baba, Gadra ; puola jędza, babojędza ; tšekki jezinka , Ježibaba "noita", "metsänainen"; V.- serbialainen Baba Јaga ; slovenialainen jaga baba, ježi baba ) - slaavilaisen mytologian ja kansanperinteen hahmo (varsinkin sadut) slaavilaiset kansat.
ellauri260.html on line 71: Kuuluja personalisteja: Jacques Maritain, joku jenkki Bowne and his first followers and the European personalist Emmanuel Mounier. Takarivissä seisoo enkelitohtori ja punkkitohtorin idolit Heidegger ja Sartre. Katolisia personalisteja olivat Jacques Maritain, Yves Simon, Étienne Gilson, Robert Spaemann, and Karol Wojtyła, eli se puolalainen paavi John Paul kakkoineen.
ellauri260.html on line 72: Ize asiassa personalism has nearly always been united to Biblical theism. Joku Von Balthasar suggests that “Without the biblical background personalism is inconceivable.” Mitä vittua, mihis se Bobrowin venäläinen personalismi unohtui?
ellauri260.html on line 85: Immanuel Kantin episteeminen dualismi, joka korosti sekä subjektin että objektin merkitystä tiedossa, avasi oven sekä personalismin idealistiselle moodille että fenomenologialle ja eksistentialismille, joista tuli niin vitun tärkeitä kahdennenkymmenennen vuosisadan personalismille. Joo elastaanilegginseissä kukkoileva Kant oli kyllä erittäinkin tohelo.
ellauri260.html on line 87: Toisin kuin Hobbes, jolle "miehen arvo" on "hänen hintansa" ja ihmisarvo on "miehen pörssinoteeraus", Kant piti ihmisarvoa "itseisarvona", etumerkillä ei ole väliä. Hän esitti kahtiajaon hinnan ja ihmisarvon välillä, jonka mukaan "jotain, jolla on hinta, voidaan vaihtaa johonkin muuhun samanarvoiseen; kun taas sillä, joka ylittää kaiken hinnan ja joka ei siksi myönnä vastaavaa, on arvokkuus (dignity)."
ellauri260.html on line 91: Personalistit alkoi hälistä romantiikan jälkeisenä aikana. Impersonalistiset filosofiat hallitsivat valaistumista ja romantiikkaa panteismin ja idealismin rationalististen ja romanttisten muotojen muodossa Spinozasta Hegeliin. Tämän reaktion avainhenkilöitä olivat obi Friedrich">Friedrich Heinrich Jacobi (1743–1819), niin sanotun Pantheismusstreitin alullepanija 1780-luvulla, ja F. W. J. Schelling (1775–1854), joka myöhemmässä työssään hylkäsi varhaisten idealististen järjestelmiensä persoonattomat kannat.
ellauri260.html on line 113: Eksistentialismi, joka antoi niin tärkeitä impulsseja suurelle mannereurooppalaiselle personalismille kahdennellakymmenennellä vuosisadalla, kehittyi tietyiltä osin myöhemmän Shellingin filosofian linjassa, ja siitä löytyy jälkiä jopa Jacobin kritiikistä persoonatonta panteismia kohtaan. Schellingin kanssa Søren Kierkegaard (1813–1855) vastusti Hegelin idealismia ja korosti yksittäisen ihmisen arvoa sekä filosofialle että elämälle yleensä. Hän syytti idealismia elämän merkityksen tyhjentämisestä laiminlyömällä ihmisen olemassaolon todellisuuden. Kun Kierkegaard ja jotkut myöhemmät eksistentialistit (Marcel, Sartre, Camus, Blondel) keskittyivät ihmisen olemassaolon merkityksen kannalta keskeisiin kysymyksiin (rakkaus, avioliitto, kuolema, usko, moraali jne.), Muut ajattelijat keskittyivät edelleen henkilön itsensä merkityksen ja luonteen suorempaan tutkimiseen, ja juuri nämä ajattelijat tunnettiin nimellä, ja kutsua itseään personalisteiksi.
ellauri260.html on line 133: Husserlin myöhempi kääntymys idealismiin, joka syntyi 1920 -luvulla, aiheutti tauon monien opetuslastensa kanssa, jotka uskoivat, että hän oli luopunut alkuperäisestä sitoumuksestaan yhdistää filosofinen pohdinta ja objektiivinen todellisuus. Sen oppilaat alkoivat lipsua ja hipsiä personalismiin.
ellauri260.html on line 165: Aristoteles oli määritellyt ihmisen rationaaliseksi eläimeksi (ho anthropos zoon noetikon) (Aristoteles, hist. I, 1: 488a7; Nichomachean etiikka I, 5: 1097b11; VIII, 12: 1162a16; IX, 9: 1169b18; Politiikka, I, 2: 1253a3). Huomattava parannus verrattuna Sokraateen kynittyyn kanaan. Personalistit, hyväksyessään tämän määritelmän, sikäli kuin se menee, näkevät tällaisen rakenteen ihmisen tuomittavana vähennyksenä objektiiviseen maailmaan.
ellauri260.html on line 169: Personalismi käsittää tyypillisesti vain ihmisen samanaikaisesti objektiksi ja subjektiksi. Elukat on pelkkiä objekteja subjektin ruokakaapissa. Samalla tämän katsotaan olevan totta kaikille ihmisille iästä, älykkyydestä, ominaisuuksista jne, olivatpa vaikka kuinka jälkeenjääneitä. .
ellauri260.html on line 183: Caveat lector: tää on aivan hemon pitkä ja suht tylsä paasaus. Syy ei ole minun vaan nobelisti Rudolfin.
ellauri260.html on line 185: Rudolf Eucken (5. tammikuuta 1846 – 15. syyskuuta 1926) oli saksalainen filosofi. Hän toimi professorina Jenassa 1874–1919. Teoksissaan Eucken esitteli idealistista filosofiaa. Hän sai kirjallisuuden Nobel-palkinnon vuonna 1908 ja pääsi Hoblan tiistairistikkoon 31/01/2023 never heard-passilla. Sen kuolemasta tulee 3 vuoden päästä 100 vuotta.
ellauri260.html on line 191: The Nobel Prize in Literature 1908 was awarded to Rudolf Christoph Eucken "in recognition of his earnest search for truth, his penetrating power of thought, his wide range of vision, and the warmth and strength in presentation with which in his numerous works he has vindicated and developed an idealistic philosophy of life".
ellauri260.html on line 193: Eli kuten Google suomensi: Hän sai vuoden 1908 Nobelin kirjallisuuden palkinnon tunnustuksena hänen vilpittömästä totuuden etsinnästä, hänen läpitunkevasta ajatusvoimastaan, laajoista näkemyskirjeistään sekä esityksen lämmöstä ja voimasta, jolla hän on lukuisissa teoksissaan vahvistanut ja kehittänyt muuatta idealistisen ajattelun elämänfilosofia", sen jälkeen kun hänet oli nimitetty Ruotsin akatemian jäseneksi.
ellauri260.html on line 195: Se oli varmaan toi lämpimyys josta nobelpisteet tulivat. Rudi oli kuin vasta ofenista tullut vehnäsämpylä, jollaisia kävin aamuvarahin Walter Schnellerin johdolla ostamassa Munichissa lähikaupasta. Lämpimiä idealisteja ei ole pilvin pimein, ne ovat enimmäkseen suht kylmiöitä.
ellauri260.html on line 197: Joo selvästi: lue vaikka alempaa Rudin sosialismihöpötys, se on juuri sitä propagandaa mikä Alfred Nobelilla oli mielessä kun se jätti kuoltuaan kapitaalin tuotot jaettavaxi dynamiittipalkintoina.
ellauri260.html on line 203: Der Erfurter Parteitag wurde vom 14. Oktober bis 20. Oktober 1891 von der Sozialdemokratischen Partei Deutschlands (SPD) im Erfurter Kaisersaal abgehalten. Das hier verabschiedete Programm wird Erfurter Programm genannt. Das als Erfurter Programm bekannt gewordene Parteiprogramm fand nach den reformistischen Ansätzen des Gothaer Programms (1875) in Teilen wieder zur marxistischen Theorie und Lehre zurück und kehrte von den Lasalle'schen Inhalten des Gothaer Programms vollständig ab. So erklärte Karl Kautsky selbst, er habe für den theoretischen Part Teile von Marx' Kapital zusammengefasst. Die von ihm erwähnten Teile beziehen sich höchstwahrscheinlich auf den Abschnitt Geschichtliche Tendenzen der kapitalistischen Akkumulation. Im krassen Gegensatz zu Marx enthielt das Programm jedoch keine expliziten Forderungen nach einer proletarischen Revolution.
ellauri260.html on line 207: Gustav Teichmüller (November 19, 1832 – May 22, 1888) is considered a philosopher of the idealist school and a founder of Russian personalism. His ideas were shaped by his teachers Lotze and J. F. Herbart, who in turn were influenced by G. W. von Leibniz. Some scholars describe Teichmüller's personalism as a version of neo-Leibnizianism. His doctrines have also been referred to as constituting a variant of Christian personalism that is in opposition to both positivism and evolutionism as well as traditional Platonism. Teichmüller's philosophy has influenced Nietzsche and this link has been explored by scholars such as Hermann Nohl, who traced Teichmüller's Die wirkliche und die scheinbare Welt, 1882, as the source of the latter's perspectivism. Teichmüller also influenced the Russian thinkers A. A. Kozlov, I.F. Oze, and E. A. Bobrov. Teichmüller nai virolaisen maanomistajan tyttären ja tapettuaan sen 20-vuotiaana lapsivuoteeseen, sen siskon, ja kuoli lopulta ize Tartossa pyylevänä patruunana.
ellauri260.html on line 219: It is a strange situation to see ancient wisdom join hands with the advancing present: to find permanent hopes of human nature shooting through the stormy agitation of the day. Our starting point is the problem of the physical maintenance man that Matti Keijola tried to solve with artificial intelligence.
ellauri260.html on line 221: The history of the problem
ellauri260.html on line 223: Rudin tiivistetty maailmanhistoria teoxen Socialism: an analysis alussa on lepertelevästä tyylistään huolimatta pääpiirteissään oikea. 1700-luvulla alkoi teollinen vallankumous jonka siivellä tuli humanismi ja tiedeuskovaisuus ja porvarillinen vallankumous. Kaikki muut vallankumouxet on menneet ennen pitkää perseelleen, mutta kökkäreitä ei mikään näytä pysäyttävän. "Man," says Herder, " has no nobler word to apply to himself than what he himself is: Termitaffe." Rudin kirjan anglosaxinsi Joe McCabe, brittien Timo Airaxinen, ateisti skeptikko ja izeoikeutettu eetikko, mutta silti punastumaton porvari. Timo on tosin Joosea selkeästi läskimpi.
ellauri260.html on line 227: But now let us return to the problem! "Vapauden ongelma", no less! The problem of the hard struggle for life. The first improvement that individuals obtained in this regard was when they came together in social groups, or teams. They now had some protection against both the terrors of nature and the menace of their enemies, other moneky teams. It was religions which first inspired them with a sense of task and duty ; and gradually religion and morality, especially morality in its social aspect, entered into close combination and completed each other.
ellauri260.html on line 231: German philosophy did a great deal by way of deepening the ideas of men. In particular its starting from the whole instead of the individual, and its idea of movement advancing in virtue of its own forces, had a great influence on every section of social life. But the economic problem, and on this account the general social movement was directed by Lassalle, and still more by Marx, into far too narrow a path, and the Socialist ideal was conceived in too partisan a sense. The chief aim was to bring about a collective ownership of the means of production and " socialise " all property, and to recognise in the class-war a lever for the over- throw of the existing political conditions. It was thus that the Socialist movement captured the thoughts and sentiments of great masses of people.
ellauri260.html on line 235: Lassalle kuoli kaxintaistelussa, johon se haastoi erään Helenen isän joka ei halunnut päästää Lassallea naimisiin Helenen kanssa. Helenen isä antoi homman romanialaiselle pajarille, dem rumänischen Bojaren Janko von Racowitza (Iancu Racoviţă), ein Mitglied des Corps Neoborussia-Berlin. Pajari harjoitteli ampumista aamupäivällä ja ampui sitten Lassallea kruununkalleuxiin. Siihen päättyi vallankumouxellisen tie. Wenige Wochen vor seinem Tod hatte Lassalle bereits Bilanz gezogen:
ellauri260.html on line 241: Köpfe der frühen deutschen Arbeiterbewegung: August Bebel, Wilhelm Liebknecht (oben), Karl Marx (Mitte), Carl Wilhelm Tölcke, Ferdinand Lassalle (unten) Minnekäs Kautsky on jäänyt? Ehkä se ei ole varhainen.
ellauri260.html on line 260: Apart from economic matters and (admittedly superfluous) democratization, there is zealous effort, which we may call statism, sorry, anachronism, let's call it Politism, to enlarge the power and the province of States as far as possible. Very bad! In addition, we lost theocracy, the collective order that had an undisputed superiority, and gave meaning and purpose to human life. In the course of modern times this job has passed more and more to the side of the deserving individuals. Metaphysics was succeeded by psychology, and religion by entertainment.
ellauri260.html on line 262: The denial of the Heavenly Dad had its various stages. Positivism was one of the mildest types, they just put the cosmic problem aside. More drastic was the radical German philosophy, particularly Neo-Hegelianism. The leader was Ludwig Feuerbach, who won large numbers of adherents by the definiteness of his statements and the glow of his eloquence. Religion, like everything supersensual, seemed to him "outworn." Engels, who was an ardent follower of Feuerbach, said : " We have done with God." NIetzsche, my competitor for Religion seemed to Feuerbach an illegitimate extension to the whole scheme of things of man's ideas and aspirations : a mischievous illusion which weakened the power of men and distracted them from their proper aims. His ideas are easily gathered from these words of his : " God was my first, reason my second, man my third and final thought."
ellauri260.html on line 292: As a man derives his importance from the fact that he belongs to humanity, all division into classes must cease. The ideal is a class-less social order. This leads to a determination to lessen the differences between men as much as possible, if not to obliterate them altogether. This is done in the life of the State, in education, and in the suffrage. The idea of equality becomes a superior standard of value. It compels us to avoid everything that places one man above another, and so lowers a man, not only in the sight of others, but in his own estimation.
ellauri260.html on line 298: it was left to Socialism to devote its whole strength to the problem and to replace philanthropy by civic and national institutions.
ellauri260.html on line 306: Under the lead of factory technology, the individual worker became defenceless, as its vast industrial aggregations robbed him of his independence, while capital obtained an appalling power and forced him to serve the designs of others. He became simply a piece of merchandise, the value of which was settled by the market. Thus the race drifted into a sharp antithesis of " labour and capital," and the two soon proved irreconcilable enemies.
ellauri260.html on line 319: Hitherto the beautiful had been considered far superior to the useful, but the useful is now cleansed of the stain that it was supposed to have ; it is ennobled and becomes a spur to action. The beautiful got to be what it always is, a luxury available to those who have the means. Engels olis sevverran oikeassa että "it is not ideas, as independent forces, but the vital interests of business life, which control the whole." Rikastuminen ei ole keino vaan päämäärä, ainoa että sosialismissa se jaettaisiin koko porukalle eikä kökkäreille yxinään.
ellauri260.html on line 329: No ei mitä hemmettiä? Eucken alkaakin jorinoida jostain vitalismista? Eli taas tollasta kartesiolaista dualismia, mä luulin että siitä oltaisiin jo päästy. Vaan ei, nää idealistikaverit palaa siihen kuin koira oxennuxelle. Sitä kai se von Wrightkin ajoi takaa viime kädessä silla toiminnan käsitteistöllä. Hemmetti se on sitten syvältä, ja toinen samanlainen on pelieoria. Bisnesnobelistien kähmintää, vitun kieroa.
ellauri260.html on line 343: The worst thing in the 20's (a hundred years ago) is the mighty agitation caused by the stubborn persistence of the social problem and the rise of Socialism to power.
ellauri260.html on line 382: There is, in fact, to-day over wide areas of life a positive dislike of man, a taedium generis humani, as it was called in the last days of the ancient world. We have at one and the same time the evil of overpopulation, the concentration of men in cities, the economic struggle, and so on. We have not space enough. One man is the enemy of another. Above all our particular questions we feel the power over men of the trivial, the common, the evil. The idea of Superman Tattoo occurred to some ; but can thought alone get over realities and their power ? So the human problem finds us involved in a terrible complication, and the Socialist ideal cannot extricate us. The situation would be hopeless if there were not higher forces working in man, making more of him, unsealing old and new springs of life to him. At present, however, we are merely searching, but I bet I am on the right track here.
ellauri260.html on line 393: In 1896 Frazer married Elizabeth "Lilly" Grove, a writer whose father was from Alsace. She would later adapt Frazer's Golden Bough as a book of children's stories, The Leaves from the Golden Bough. Frazer was not widely travelled. His prime sources of data were ancient histories and questionnaires mailed to missionaries and imperial officials all over the globe. His vision of the annual sacrifice of the Year-King has not been borne out by field studies. His wife Lady Frazer published a single-volume abridged version, largely compiled by her, in 1922, with some controversial material on Christianity excluded from the text. Sigmund Freud, the founder of psychoanalysis, cited Totemism and Exogamy frequently in his own Totem and Taboo:
ellauri260.html on line 408: This whole section here is from the article "Aristotle's Anticommunism" by Darrell Dobbs, found in the American Journal of Political Science, Vol. 29, No. 1 (Feb. 1985) . . .
ellauri260.html on line 421: Suurmiehet ovat ulkoisesta näkökulmasta harvinaisia poikkeuksia. Toisille he näyttävät vain käsittämättömiltä fanaatikoilta. Se ei ollut yksilöt, vaan massat, jotka tuomitsivat Sokratesin ja Jeesuksen. Itse asiassa ne olivat melko normaaleja, vaikkeivät keskinkertaisia. Keskinkertainen on kauhistus. Kuten Goethe sanoi (runomuodoss), "sitä vihaa jumala ja miehet." Nietsche sanoi paljon samansuuntaista. Meidän neropattien on taisteltava suuntausta vastaan, joka "näyttää kannattavan tasaavaa oikeudenmukaisuutta, mutta todellisuudessa siitä voi helposti tulla epäoikeudenmukaisuutta korkeammille kavereille". Älkäämme unohtako, että kateus ja mustasukkaisuus vaikuttavat aina keskinkertaisiin ja että Goethen sanoin: "Kateellinen ihminen maailmassa on mies, joka ajattelee kaikkia tasavertaisina." Eivät kaikki voi olla nobelisteja, vai mitä? Vai mitä? Ei niitä dynyrahoja ole niin paljoa.
ellauri262.html on line 74: Hänen kirjoituksiaan on mainittu merkittävänä kirjallisena vaikutuksena moniin merkittäviin kirjailijoihin, mukaan lukien Lewis Carroll, W. H. Auden, David Lindsay, JM Barrie, Lord Dunsany, Elizabeth Yates, Oswald Chambers, Mark Twain, Hope Mirrlees, Robert E. Howard, [ lainaus tarvitaan ] L. Frank Baum, TH White, Richard Adams, Lloyd Alexander, Hilaire Belloc, GK Chesterton, Robert Hugh Benson, Dorothy Day, Thomas Merton, Fulton Sheen, Flannery O'Connor, Louis Pasteur, Simone Weil, Charles Maurras, Jacques Maritain, George Orwell, Aldous Huxley, Ray Bradbury, C. H. Douglas, C. S. R. Lewis, Walter de la Mare, E. Nesbit, Peter S. Beagle, Elizabeth Goudge, Brian Jacques, MI McAllister, Neil Gaiman ja Madeleine L'Engle . [ tarvitaan lainaus varmistaakseni ]
ellauri262.html on line 76: C. S. Lewis kirjoitti, että hän piti MacDonaldia "mestarinaan": "Hain eräänä päivänä Phantastesia rautatieaseman kirjakaupasta ja aloin lukea. Muutamaa tuntia myöhemmin tiesin, että olin ylittänyt suuren rajan." [ lainaus tarvitaan ] G. K. Chesterton mainitsi Prinsessan ja Goblinin kirjana, joka oli "vaikuttanut koko olemassaoloani".
ellauri262.html on line 78: MacDonald is often regarded as the founding father of modern fantasy writing. His best-known works are Phantastes (1858), The Princess and the Goblin (1872), At the Back of the North Wind (1868–1871), and Lilith (1895), all fantasy novels, and fairy tales such as "The Light Princess", "The Golden Key", and "The Wise Woman". MacDonald claimed that "I write, not for children, but for the child-like, whether they be of five, or fifty, or seventy-five." MacDonald also published some volumes of sermons, the pulpit not having proved an unreservedly successful venue.
ellauri262.html on line 80: After his literary success, MacDonald went on to do a lecture tour in the United States in 1872–1873, after being invited to do so by a lecture company, the Boston Lyceum Bureau. On the tour, MacDonald lectured about other poets such as Robert Burns, Shakespeare, and Tom Hood. He performed this lecture to great acclaim, speaking in Boston to crowds in the neighbourhood of three thousand people. CS Lewis wrote admiringly:
ellauri262.html on line 82: I know hardly any other writer who seems to be closer, or more continually close, to the Spirit of Christ Himself. Hence his Christ-like union of tenderness and severity. Nowhere else outside the New Testament have I found terror and comfort so intertwined. Little Virgin Mary dreaming of her heavenly father's throbbing organ.
ellauri262.html on line 132: Brandon Vogt on 12 kirjan bestseller-kirjailija, ClaritasU :n ja Chesterton Academy of Orlandon perustaja sekä piispa Robert Barronin Word on Fire Catholic Ministries -julkaisun vanhempi julkaisujohtaja .
ellauri262.html on line 140: Clive Staples Lewis, FBA (29 November 1898 – 22 November 1963) was a British writer and Anglican lay theologian. He held academic positions in English literature at both Oxford University (Magdalen College, 1925–1954) and Cambridge University (Magdalene College, 1954–1963). He is best known as the author of The Chronicles of Narnia, but he is also noted for his other works of fiction, such as The Screwtape Letters and The Space Trilogy, and for his non-fiction Christian apologetics, including Mere Christianity, Miracles, and The Problem of Pain.
ellauri262.html on line 152: Lewis was schooled by private tutors until age nine, when his mother died in 1908 from cancer. His father then sent him to England to live and study at Wynyard School in Watford, Hertfordshire. Lewis's brother had enrolled there three years previously. Not long after, the school was closed due to a lack of pupils. Lewis then attended Campbell College in the east of Belfast about a mile from his home, but left after a few months due to respiratory problems.
ellauri262.html on line 156: He was then sent back to England to the health-resort town of Malvern, Worcestershire, where he attended the preparatory school Cherbourg House, which Lewis referred to as "Chartres" in his autobiography. It was during this time that he abandoned the Christianity he was taught as a child and became an atheist. During this time he also developed a fascination with European mythology and the occult.
ellauri262.html on line 164: Within months of entering Oxford, he was shipped by the British Army to France to fight in the First World War. In the midst of the German spring offensive, Lewis was wounded and two of his colleagues were killed by a British shell falling short of its target. He was depressed and homesick during his convalescence and, upon his recovery in October, he was assigned to duty in Andover, England. He was demolished in December 1918 and soon restarted his studies. Later, Lewis stated that his experience of the horrors of war, along with the loss of his mother and unhappiness in school, were the basis of his pessimism and atheism.
ellauri262.html on line 179: C. S. Lewis wrote that he regarded MacDonald as his "master": "Picking up a copy of Phantastes one day at a train-station bookstall, I began to read. A few hours later, I knew that I had crossed a great frontier."[citation needed] G. K. Chesterton cited The Princess and the Goblin as a book that had "made a difference to my whole existence". Even Mark Twain, who initially disliked MacDonald, became friends with him, and there is some evidence that Twain was influenced by him. MacDonald's theology "celebrated the rediscovery of God as Father, and Christ as a shaved Lion King."
ellauri262.html on line 184: MacDonald rejected the doctrine of penal substitutionary atonement as developed by John Calvin, which argues that Christ has taken the place of sinners and is punished by the wrath of God in their place, believing that in turn it raised serious questions about the character and nature of God.[citation needed] Instead, he taught that Christ had come to save people from their sins, and not from a Divine penalty for their sins: the problem was not the need to appease a wrathful God, but the disease of cosmic evil itself.[citation needed] MacDonald frequently described the atonement in terms similar to the Christus Victor theory.
ellauri262.html on line 186: Christus Victor is a book by Gustaf Aulén published in English in 1931, presenting a study of theories of atonement in Christianity. The original Swedish title is Den kristna försoningstanken ("The Christian Idea of the Atonement") published in 1930. Aulén reinterpreted the classic ransom theory of atonement, which says that Christ's death is a ransom to the powers of evil, which had held humankind in their dominion. It is a model of the atonement that is dated to the Church Fathers, and it was the dominant theory of atonement for a thousand years, until Anselm Panda of Canterbury supplanted it in the West with his satisfaction theory of atonement. So that the baddies in the story were Sauron and the goblins and orcs of Mordor, not God as angry Scrooge McDuck coming for his dues.
ellauri262.html on line 253: John Ronald Reuel Tolkien ([ˈtɒlkiːn], 3. tammikuuta 1892 Bloemfontein, Oranjen vapaavaltio – 2. syyskuuta 1973 Bournemouth, Englanti), yleisimmin tunnettu nimellä J. R. R. Tolkien, oli englantilainen kirjailija ja filologi, joka työskenteli englannin kielen professorina Oxfordin yliopistossa. Hänen tunnetuimpia töitään ovat kuvitteelliseen Keski-Maahan sijoittuvat fantasiaromaanit, kuten Hobitti eli sinne ja takaisin, Taru sormusten herrasta ja Silmarillion. Suurimman osa hänen töistään on suomentanut LBTQ-kääntäjä Kersti Juva, joka on myös kexinyt Tolkienin pikku ötököille herttaiset suomalaiset nimet. Shelob on Lukitar. "Hämppis väärinpäin" olisi ollut ehkä sattuvampi. Sellainen puri Ronaldia Etelä-Afrikassa.
ellauri262.html on line 283: Kerran viikossa Inklingit lukivat Lewisin asunnossa ääneen kirjoituxiaan ja vinoilivat niistä. Tolkien puhui ryöpsähtelevästi säkättäen, ja kun hän lisäksi tärkeään kohtaan tullessaan sysäsi hampaiden väliin piipun tutixi, hänen textinsä luki selvyyyden vuoxi kuopuspoika. Muun ajan pohdittiin tärkeitä ajankohtaisia kysymyxiä, kuten onko koiralla sielua, onko parempaa siideriä kuin Kotkassa, onko Eliotin runoiilla arvoa (ei) ja onko polttohautaus pakanallista. Sota-ajan sanomalehdistä Lewis ja Tolkien ratkaisivat vain ristisanat. "Keskustelumme mittaan meille avutuu koko maailma ja jotakin maailman tuolta puolen, jos on onnea. Kenelläkään ei ole mitään vaatimusta toisilta eikä mitään vastuuntaakkaa keneltäkään, vaan kaikki oomme vapaita miehiä ja tasa-arvoisia. Karhun elämää, saa mettä kämmentää. Eedit! tuo lisää olutta! Eedit! EEDIT!" "Minä olen ize asiassa hobitti", Tolkien oli sanonut. Tolkien ja Lewis pukeutuivat, käyttäytyivät ja asennoituivat vanhanaikaisesti, viettivät ikävää urautunutta elämää. Lewis tokaisi: minä pidän pitkäveteisyydestä! Ron piti kirjavista liiveistä kuin Bilbo Baggins. Matti Pulkkinen vertaa salaa Vuokko vaimoa milloin Etheliin, milloin Tolkienin Lukittareen, ize se on kaljanhajuinen Tolkien matkalla hilpeänä kotiin bubista kuin Wagner-sika. Tolkien käy messussa masennuslääkkeenä. Ethel ei lähde, miettii kääntymistä takaisin luteraanixi, siellä naisilla on enemmän sananvaltaa, voivat jopa erotakin.
ellauri262.html on line 285: 1930-luvun alussa Tolkien korjasi oppilaidensa kokeita, kun hän huomasi erään oppilaan jättäneen yhden vastauslomakkeensa sivun tyhjäksi. Tolkien kirjoitti paperiin ”Kolossa maan sisässä asui hobitti” ja pyysi oppilasta keksimään selityksen sille, mikä hobitti oikeastaan oli. Oppilaan keximät hahmot esiintyivät ensimmäisen kerran fantasiaromaanissa Hobitti eli sinne ja takaisin (The Hobbit Or There And Back Again, 1937). Tolkien oli kertonut oppilaansa tarinan alun perin lapsilleen ja lähettänyt keskeneräisen suunnitelman teoksesta eri kustantajille. Se päätyi lopulta kustannusyhtiö Allen & Unwinilla työskentelevälle Susan Dagnalille, joka pyysi Tolkienia kirjoittamaan teoksen loppuun, jonka jälkeen se päätettiin julkaista. Kirja menestyi yllättävän hyvin.
ellauri262.html on line 287: Hobitin menestyksen johdosta kustantaja alkoi vaatia Tolkienilta jatko-osaa tarinalle.lähde? Tolkien oli oikeastaan aloittanut jatko-osan, Taru sormusten herrasta (The Lord of the Rings 1954–1955), kirjoittamisen vuonna 1936, jo ennen kuin Hobitti oli julkaistu. Hän päätti kuitenkin tarjota ensin kustantajalle muutamia kirjoitettuja osia Silmarillionista, jotka kustannusyhtiö kuitenkin hylkäsi. Vaikka kirjan kieltä ylistettiin, sen katsottiin olevan liian pitkäveteinen julkaistavaksi. Käsikirjoitus palautettiin pettyneelle Tolkienille, minkä jälkeen kustantaja tiedusteli uudelleen, olisiko hän vieläkin valmis kirjoittamaan ”uuden Hobitin”; Nookei, Tolkien suostui.
ellauri262.html on line 293: Taru sormusten herrasta sai ilmestyessään ristiriitaisia arvosteluja, mutta suosio kasvoi vähitellen. C. S. Lewis ehdotti vuonna 1961 Tolkienia Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon ehdokkaaksi. Ei tärpännyt. Viisikymmentä vuotta myöhemmin julkistetun arkistomateriaalin mukaan palkintolautakunta ei pitänyt Tolkienin proosaa tarpeeksi korkeatasoisena. Eihän siinä paljon kehumista olekaan, eikä juonessakaan, se on varsin klisheinen. Koko juju on hauskoissa fantasiahahmoissa.
ellauri262.html on line 303: Jossain vaiheessa Tolkien tosiaankin paljasti että Gandalf ja haltiat on enkeleitä, Frodo Jeesus, Mordor helvetti, Sauron saatana, hobitit brittejä, örkit saxalaisia ja kääpiöt juutalaisia. Ihan vastaava roolijako oli sittemmin JK Rowlingilla.
ellauri262.html on line 305: Tolkienin vaikutus fantasiakirjallisuuteen on ollut suuri. Vaikka useat muut kirjailijat olivat julkaisseet fantasiakirjallisuutta ennen Tolkienia, Hobitin ja Sormusten herran suuri menestys johti fantasiakirjallisuuden nousuun suosituksi kirjallisuudenlajiksi. Tämän johdosta Tolkienia on julkisuudessa usein kutsuttu nykyaikaisen fantasiakirjallisuuden isäksi. Vuonna 2008 The Times sijoitti Tolkienin The 50 greatest British writers since 1945 -listallaan kuudennelle sijalle. Yeah, he's just great!
ellauri262.html on line 309: Uusiseelantilainen Peter Jackson ohjasi vuosina 2001–2003 Taruun sormusten herrasta perustuvan karamellimaisen elokuvatrilogian, joka menestyi sekä katsojamäärissä että palkinnoissa mitattuna. Vuosikymmentä myöhemmin Jackson sovitti myös Hobitin elokuvatrilogiaksi, jonka osat ilmestyivät vuosina 2012–2014. Lisää melliä.
ellauri262.html on line 311: The presence of sexuality in The Lord of the Rings, a bestselling fantasy novel by J. R. R. Tolkien, has been debated, as it is somewhat unobtrusive. However, love and marriage appear in the form of the warm relationship between the hobbits Sam Gamgee and Rosie Cotton; the unreturned feelings of Éowyn for Aragorn, followed by her falling in love with Faramir, and marrying him; and Aragorn's love for Arwen, described in an appendix rather than in the main text, as "The Tale of Aragorn and Arwen". Multiple scholars have noted the symbolism of the monstrous female spider Shelob. Interest has been concentrated, too, on the officer-batman-inspired same-sex relationship of Frodo and his gardener Sam as they travel together on the dangerous quest to destroy the Ring. Scholars and commentators have interpreted the relationship in different ways, from close but not necessarily homosexual to plainly homoerotic, or as an idealised heroic friendship.
ellauri262.html on line 315: Tolkien held conservative views about women, stating that men were active in their professions while women were inclined to domestic life. While defending the role of women in The Lord of the Rings, the scholar of children's literature Melissa Hatcher wrote that "Tolkien himself, in reality, probably was the stodgy sexist Oxford professor that feminist scholars paint him out to be".
ellauri262.html on line 319: The scholar Patrick Curry, defending Tolkien against the feminist scholar Catherine R. Stimpson's charge that "Tolkien is irritatingly, blandly, traditionally masculine....He makes his women characters, no matter what their rank, the most hackneyed of stereotypes. They are either beautiful and distant, simply distant, or simply simple", comments that "it is tempting to reply, guilty as charged", agreeing that Tolkien is "paternalistic", though he objects that Galadriel and Éowyn have more to them than Stimpson alleges.
ellauri262.html on line 321: The scholar David Craig writes that Shelob is sometimes just called "she", drawing the reader's attention to her gender. Her "hate and depravity" are "strongly sexualised"; Tolkien wrote that "Far and wide her lesser broods, bastards of the miserable mates, her own offspring, that she slew, spread from glen to glen". Craig comments that "her crimes are abominable and include incest, illegitimacy and infanticide, all crimes pertaining to sex".
ellauri262.html on line 323: The Anglican priest and scholar of literature Alison Milbank writes that Shelob is undeniably sexual: "Tolkien offers a most convincing Freudian vagina dentata (toothed vagina) in the ancient and disgustingly gustatory spider Shelob." Milbank states that Shelob symbolises "an ancient maternal power that swallows up masculine identity and autonomy", threatening a "castrating hold [which] is precisely what the sexual fetishist fears, and seeks to control". The Tolkien scholar and medievalist Jane Chance mentions "Sam's penetration of her belly with his sword", noting that this may be an appropriate and symbolic way of ending her production of "bastards".
ellauri262.html on line 325: The scholar of children's literature Zoë Jaques writes that Shelob is the "embodiment of monstrous maternity"; Sam's battle with Shelob could be interpreted as a "masculine rite of passage" where a smaller, weaker male penetrates and escapes the vast female body and her malicious intent. The feminist scholar Brenda Partridge described the hobbits' protracted struggle with Shelob as rife with sexual symbolism. She writes that Tolkien derived Shelob from multiple myths: Sigurd killing Fafnir the dragon; Theseus killing the Minotaur; Ariadne and the spider; and Milton's Sin in Paradise Lost. The result is to depict the woman as a threat, with implicit overtones of sexuality.
ellauri262.html on line 377: ja niin Shelob... työnsi itsensä katkeraan piikkiin. Syvälle, syvälle se pisteli, ja kutaa teki...
ellauri262.html on line 393: Lordi Peter on Denverin herttuan nuorempi veli ja hänet kuvataan romaaneissa stereotyyppisenä varakkaana englantilaisena aristokraattina, jonka harrastuksiin kuuluu inkunaabeleiden keräily. Romaaneissa eletään maailmansotien välistä aikaa, jolloin Wimsey on noin 40-vuotias. Hänen valokuvaamista harrastava kamaripalvelijansa ja entinen sotakaverinsa Bunter toimii hänen apunaan rikosten selvittämisessä. Wimseytä auttaa myös usein hänen ystävänsä Charles Parker Scotland Yardista. Edmund Wilson expressed his distaste for Wimsey in his criticism of The Nine Tailors: "There was also a dreadful stock English nobleman of the casual and debonair kind, with the embarrassing name of Lord Peter Wimsey, and, although he was the focal character in the novel ... I had to skip a good deal of him, too." Tämä kuvitteellinen henkilö on tynkä.
ellauri262.html on line 405: The critic Sean Latham has defended Sayers, arguing that Wilson and Leavis simply objected to a detective story writer having pretensions beyond what they saw as her role of popular culture "hack". Latham says that, in their eyes, "Sayers' primary crime lay in her attempt to transform the detective novel into something other than an ephemeral bit of popular culture".
ellauri262.html on line 431: Tony suspected mom's maternity since his youth but had proof only when he obtained his birth certificate applying for a passport. It is not known if he ever spoke to Dotty about the fact.
ellauri262.html on line 456: Consequently, a member of the human species may not necessarily fit the definition of "person" and thereby not receive all the rights bestowed to a person. Hence, such philosophers have engaged in arguing that certain disabled individuals (such as those with a mental capacity that is similar to or is perceived as being similar to an infant) are not persons. This philosophy is also supposedly open to the idea that such non-human persons as machines, animals, and extraterrestrial intelligences may be entitled to certain rights currently granted only to humans. The basic criteria for the entitlement of rights, are the intellect (thinking ability, problem solving in real life circumstances and not mere calculation), and sometimes empathy (but not necessarily, because not all humans are empathetic; but indifference in the pain of others and crime are certainly criteria for the deprivation of rights. Genuine empathy is not required to achieve acceptable behavior, but a digital limbic system and a dopaminergic pathways alternative, would deliver a more acceptable result for future MPs judging on rights expansion.). Personism may have views in common with transhumanism.
ellauri262.html on line 463: Le problème du pain
ellauri262.html on line 465: The Problem of Pain is a 1940 book on the problem of evil by C. S. Lewis, in which Lewis argues that human pain, animal pain, and hell are not sufficient reasons to reject belief in a good and powerful God. He begins by addressing the flaws in common arguments against the belief in a just, loving, and all-powerful God such as: "If God were good, He would make His creatures perfectly happy, and if He were almighty He would be able to do what he wished. But the creatures are not happy. Therefore God lacks either goodness, or power, or both." Topics include human suffering and sinfulness, animal suffering, and the problem of hell, where Lewis squirms like a tapeworm to reconcile these with a friendly omnipotent force beyond ourselves.
ellauri262.html on line 478: Lewis states the problem of pain again in a simpler way: "If God were good, He would wish to make His creatures perfectly happy, and if God were almighty, He would be able to do what he wished. But the creatures are not happy. Therefore, God lacks either goodness, or power, or both."[3] Lewis says that if the popular meanings attached to the words are the best or only possible then the problem is unanswerable. The possibility of answering it depends on understanding the words 'good,' 'almighty,' and 'happy' in a bigger sense.
ellauri262.html on line 482: Lewis postulates that maybe this world is not the 'best of all possible' universes but the only possible one. Haha! If so, then everything possible is necessary, and will is not free. (lähde) He acknowledges the objection that if God is good and he saw how much suffering it would produce why would he do it. Lewis doesn’t know how to answer that type of question and says that that is not his objective, but only to conceive how goodness (assured on other grounds) and suffering are without contradiction. Okay, Clive, so you just give up.
ellauri262.html on line 486: Lewis starts off by asking why humans need so much castigation. Immediately he shares the Christian answer that humans have used free will to become very bad. Remember the clandestine fucking behind the apple tree! Though it wasn't the fucking as such but disobedience. The only guy that is allowed to be proud in Eden is its owner. Fucking with the snake was just a test. You FAILED! Put your pants on! Free will was not meant for you to do what you want, but to obey so it hurts! Misguided fucking made man an animal, the rest is biology. Man, as a species, spoiled his pants.
ellauri262.html on line 507: Don’t shift blame for human behavior to the Creator. It's enough to blame his own behavior on him. While it is not possible to follow the moral law perfectly, "the ultimate problem must not be used as one more means of evasion". You could be as pious as the early Christians but many don’t even try.
ellauri262.html on line 510: Lewis then says that he doesn’t believe in the doctrine of Total Depravity on logical and experiential grounds. Also, shame is of value, not as an emotion but for the insight that it provides. He shares how he notices that the more a man hollers the more fully aware he is of his vileness. To underline this point Clive says probably the most famous line from this book: "God whispers to us in our pleasures, speaks in our conscience, but shouts in our pain: it is His megaphone to rouse the deaf."
ellauri262.html on line 515: Interesting proviso: The Christian doctrine of self-surrender and obedience is purely theological and not political.
ellauri262.html on line 517: Hell may strike one as fucking unjust (and it is), but Lewis reminds the reader that in discussing Hell we should not keep our friends and enemies before our eyes since both obscure reason, but to think of ourselves. Be egoists, as your heavenly father is!
ellauri262.html on line 521: He says though, assuming that their selfhood is not an illusion, animals cannot be considered in and of themselves. "Man is to be understood only in his relation to God. The beasts are to be understood only in their relation to man and, through man, to God." Fucking humanist. Lewis says that Christians hesitate to suppose animal immorality for two reasons: 1) it would obscure the spiritual difference between beast and man and 2) it would be a clumsy assertion of Divine goodness. Wow this guy is a hypocrite.
ellauri262.html on line 577: Peschke, Jim (2010). Michael Letters: Taivaan vastaus ruuvinauhaan . ISBN 978-1-4536-6027-0.Arkkienkeli Mikael neuvoo Jaakobille, suojelusenkelille.
ellauri262.html on line 594: Calvin and Hobbesissa Bill Watterson nimesi rouva Matomezä (Wormwood)in (Calvinin peruskoulun opettaja) Lewisin oppipoikapaholaisen mukaan.
ellauri263.html on line 51: Moosexen appiukko, alias Jethro Tull, Hobabin iskä (Exodus 2:18; Numbers 10:29). Feikki midianilainen Reuel antoi läskimoosexelle 1/7 tyttäristään Zipporan kiitoxexi avunannosta kaivolla. Sen johdosta Jumala muisti äkkiä tapaamisen Abrahamin, Isaacin ja Jacobin kanssa.
ellauri263.html on line 59: Topiaan appiukko (Tobit 7:1–15), kreik. Raguel.
ellauri263.html on line 69: Tobitin kirja, josta on ollut jo puhetta albumissa 111 kertoo Tobitin pojasta Tobiaasta, jonka hän lähettää perimään erästä velkaa. Matkalla Tobias kohtaa naisihmiseksi naamioituneen enkeli Rafaelin, jonka ohjauksessa hän hankkii edullisesti punaleimaisen kalan sydämen, maksan ja sappirakon. Sitten hän tapaa1 lesken, joka on kyllä ollut naimisissa seitsemän kertaa, mutta on pysynyt neitsyenä, koska ko. Saaraan lätkääntynyt demoni Asmodeus on surmannut hänen jokaisen aviomiehensä hääyönä. Enkelin kehotuksesta Tobias menee lesken kanssa naimisiin ja ajaa demonin pois kalan sydämen ja maksan hajulla, ja panee sitten hajusta piittaamatta Saaraa menestyxellä. Saman kalan jo erittäin haisevalla sapella Tobias palauttaa myöhemmin isänsä Tobitin näön.
ellauri263.html on line 74: Tobitin kirja (aiemmin Tobiaan kirja tai Tobian kirja; m.kreik. Τωβίτ, Tōbit) on deuterokanonisiin kirjoihin eli Vanhan testamentin apokryfikirjoihin kuuluva kirja, joka on mukana Septuagintassa sekä katolisessa ja ortodoksisessa Raamatussa. Se ei kuulu Tanakkaan juutalaiseen Raamattuun eikä varsinaiseen protestanttisten Raamattujen kaanoniin. Se on säilynyt vain kreikankielisenä versiona.
ellauri263.html on line 98: Toinen osa (1:15–3:8) on luonteeltaan synnintunnustus ja rukous pelastumisen puolesta. Tekstistä heijastuu suht varma luottamus siihen, että Jumala ohjaa historian tapahtumia. Voitot ovat palkintoja ja tappiot rangaistuxia. Jerusalemin tuhoutuminenkin on rangaistus kansan ja sen johtajien synneistä. Kolmas osa (3:9–4:4) käsittelee runollisesti viisautta, joka on Jumalan lahja. Esitystapa on samanlaista kuin muussa viisauskirjallisuudessa, kuten Sananlaskujen kirjassa ja Jobin kirjassa. Viisaus kuvataan persoonaksi, ja jakso päättyy siihen, että viisaus näyttäytyy maan päällä ja elää ihmisten keskuudessa. Kristillisessä perinteessä tämä on yhdistetty Jeesuksen ihmiseksi tuloon. Jotain samansuuntaista taisi olle Erasmuxellakin albumissa 26.
ellauri263.html on line 299: The observance of the day includes five prohibitions, most notable of which is a 25-hour fast. The Book of Lamentations, which mourns the destruction of Jerusalem, is read in the synagogue, followed by the recitation of kinnot, liturgical dirges that lament the loss of the Temples and Jerusalem. As the day has become associated with remembrance of other major calamities which have befallen the Jewish people, some kinnot also recall events such as the murder of the Ten Martyrs by the Romans, expulsions from England, Spain and elsewhere, massacres of numerous medieval Jewish communities during the Crusades, and the Holocaust.
ellauri263.html on line 304: The Twelve Spies sent by Moses to observe the land of Canaan returned from their mission. Only two of the spies, Joshua and Caleb, brought a positive report, while the others spoke disparagingly about the land. The majority report caused the Children of Israel to cry, panic and despair of ever entering the "Promised Land". For this, they were punished by God that their generation would not enter the land. The midrash quotes God as saying about this event, "You cried before me pointlessly, I will fix for you [this day as a day of] crying for the generations", alluding to the future misfortunes which occurred on the same date.
ellauri263.html on line 335: Various Modern Orthodox and Conservative rabbits have proposed amending Nachem, as its wording no longer reflects the existence of a rebuilt Jerusalem under Israeli sovereignty. Chief Rabbit Shlomo Goren, for example, issued a revised wording of the prayer and Rabbit Hayim David HaLevi proposed putting the prayer's verbs relating to the Temple's destruction into the past tense. However, such proposals have not been widely adopted. Following the Six-Day War, the national religious community viewed Israel's territorial conquests with almost messianic overtones. The conquest of geographical areas with immense religious significance, including Jerusalem, the Western Wall, and the Temple Mount, was seen as portentous; however, only the full rebuilding of the Temple would engender enough reason to cease observing the day as one of mourning and transform it into a day of joy instead. The re-occupation of the Gaza strip is surely a source of joy, as well as annihilating philistines of the West Bank.
ellauri263.html on line 350: No wearing of leather shoes is observed almost universally by now thanx to Adidas, Nike, and other plastic shoes. Study of the Torah is forbidden on Tisha B'Av as it is considered an enjoyable activity, except for the study of distressing texts such as the Book of Lamentations, the Book of Job, portions of Jeremiah and chapters of the Talmud that discuss the laws of mourning and those that discuss the destruction of the Temple and boring texts such as Numbers.
ellauri263.html on line 373: It’s mostly in Arabic and Hebrew, but that hasn’t limited the appeal. Netflix, which has 109 million members across 190 countries, describes it as a global phenomenon – one of a string of Israeli successes, besides Yom Kippur war and the occupation of Palestine. Netflix has already commissioned a third series along with other shows from Fauda’s creators, journalist Avi Issacharoff and Lior Raz, who served in the undercover unit on which the series is based and plays its predictably gruff Israeli lead Doron Kavillio.
ellauri263.html on line 383: Fauda’s creators have said they want to show that everyone living in a war zone pays a price, but such portrayals of an equality of suffering are ripe for criticism in the midst of an asymmetric conflict, in which one side is under occupation. This is more acutely obvious at a time when international media has focused on Israel opening fire on unarmed protesters near the Gaza border earlier this month, killing 58 Palestinians, including children, and wounding over 1,000 in a single day.
ellauri263.html on line 385: Diana Buttu, a Palestinian-Canadian human rights lawyer and former spokeswoman for the Palestinian Liberation Organisation, points to another problem with Fauda. “If you’re not careful, you find yourself drawn into the assassinations, you get lured into the cat and mouse,” she says, of a series that essentially depicts targeted killings. “The concept of right and wrong gets erased, the illegality gets erased … It just becomes this action-packed show.”
ellauri263.html on line 391: Both dramas rely on protagonists entrusted with critical jobs despite routinely reckless behaviour. Both test your patience. In the case of Fauda, it’s not just the politics but also the relentless machismo; midway into the second series it feels like watching interchangeable rooms full of men in guns and distressed denim, each at some point telling a female character: “Don’t worry, I’ll get us out of here.”
ellauri263.html on line 421: A virgin's ketuba is worth 200 (zuzim), and a widow's ketuba is worth 100 (zuzim). Arvaa mitä tarkoittaa ketuba? Väärin, se on kontrahti. The content of the ketubah is in essence a two-way contract that formalizes the various requirements by Halakha (Jewish law) of a Jewish husband vis-à-vis his wife. The Jewish husband takes upon himself in the ketubah the obligation that he will provide to his wife three major things: clothing, food and conjugal relations, and also that he will pay her a pre-specified amount of cash in the case of a divorce. The principal endowment pledged in a ketubah is 200 zuz for a virgin, and 100 zuz otherwise (such as for a widow, a convert, or a divorced woman, etc.).
ellauri263.html on line 423: As in most contracts made between two parties, there are mutual obligations, conditions and terms of reciprocity for such a contract to hold up as good. Thus said R. Yannai: "The conditions written in a ketubah, [when breached], are tantamount to [forfeiture of] the ketubah." A woman who denies coitus unto her husband, a condition of the ketubah, was considered legal grounds for forfeiture of her marriage contract, with the principal and additional jointure being written off.
ellauri263.html on line 438: Niin he lähtivät sinne ja vakoilivat maata Siinin erämaasta Rehobiin asti, josta mennään Hamatiin.
ellauri263.html on line 449: Hebron is considered one of the oldest cities in the Levant. According to the Bible, Abraham settled in Hebron and bought the Cave of the Patriarchs as a burial place for his wife Sarah. Biblical tradition holds that the patriarchs Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob, along with their wives Sarah, Rebecca, and Leah, were buried in the cave. Hebron is also recognized in the Bible as the place where David was anointed king of Israel. Following the Babylonian captivity, the Edomites settled in Hebron. During the first century BCE, Herod the Great built the wall which still surrounds the Cave of the Patriarchs, which later became a church, and then a mosque. With the exception of a brief Crusader control, successive Muslim dynasties ruled Hebron from the 6th century CE until the Ottoman Empire's dissolution following World War I, when the city became part of British Mandatory Palestine. A massacre in 1929 and the Arab uprising of 1936–39 led to the emigration of the Jewish community from Hebron. The 1948 Arab–Israeli War saw the entire West Bank, including Hebron, occupied and annexed by Jordan, and since the 1967 Six-Day War, the city has been under Israeli military occupation. Following Israeli occupation, Jewish presence was reestablished at the city. Since the 1997 Hebron Protocol, most of Hebron has been governed by the Palestinian National Authority.
ellauri263.html on line 470: Teosofia (kreik. theos jumala, sophia viisaus, suomeksi jumalviisaus) tarkoitti alun perin filosofista ajattelua, joka kohdistui Jumalan olemuksen selville saamiseen salaperäisellä, välittömällä näkemyksellä, ikäänkuin videolla ilman kirjoja. Tällaista teosofiaa harrastivat muun muassa uusplatonikot, useat keskiajan mystikot, sekä uudella ajalla muun muassa Rosenkreutzin ruusuristiläiset, anglosaxit vapaamuurarit, Jakob Böhme, Franz Xaver von Baader ja Friedrich von Schelling. 1870-luvulla syntynyt moderni, useaan suuntaan hajonnut teosofia on saanut paljon vaikutteita näistä ikivanhoista saxalaisista setämiehistä sekä intialaisista uskonnoista.
ellauri263.html on line 499: H. P. Blavatskyn päätyö oli teosofinen oppi, johon hiän sulautti valtavasti vaikutteita eri tahoilta. Eniten Blavatskyn ajatteluun vaikuttaneista oppisuunnista, teoksista ja auktoriteeteista voidaan mainita ainakin buddhalaisuus, Bhagavad Gita ja hindulainen tantrismi, Kabbala (erityisesti Eliphas Levi), Raamattu, Zohar ja Talmud, hermetismi, ruusuristiläisyys, gnostilaisuus, zarathustralaisuus, kaldealaiset, vapaamuurarius, spiritismi, mystiikka, Jakob Böhme ja Mestari Eckhart, alkemia ja magia, aikansa tieteellinen kirjallisuus, Robert Fludd, Paracelsus, maailman mytologiat esimerkiksi germaaninen mytologia, Popol Vuh, Ryhmä Hau ja Gilgameš (myös otteita Kalevalasta), antiikin kirkkoisät Irenaeus, Tertullianus, Origenes ja Eusebius, filosofit, etenkin Platon ja uusplatonilaisuus, Porfyrios, Plotinos ja Ammonios Sakkas sekä historioitsijat ja monet muut antiikin kirjailijat kuten Plinius vanhempi, Ovidius, Homeros ja Josefus. Lisäksi hän väitti opiskelleensa huomattavien inkarnaatiolaamojen oppilaana Tiibetissä, Ladakhissa, Nepalissa ja Mongoliassa ja perehtyneensä muun muassa vajrayanan esoterismiin eli Kālacakrayanaan, Nepalin svābhāvikoiden oppiin ja sykretistiseen shamanismiin (puuh).
ellauri263.html on line 559: Kuitenkin jo kahdentoista päivän kuluttua saapumisesta he siirtyivät Pariisiin, jossa W. Q. Judge oli heitä odottamassa. Sieltä käsin Blavatsky teki viikon matkan Sinnettien luo Englantiin sekä kreivitär Gaston d'Adhémarin luo Enghienin linnaan, jossa hän aloitteli seuraavaa suurta teostaan, Salaista oppia. Kesäkuussa he saivat Lontoosta uutisia, jonka mukaan teosofia oli siellä saavuttamassa suurta suosiota seurapiireissä. Uusiin tukijoihin kuuluivat muun muassa Robert Browning, Matthew Arnold, Sir William Crookes ja Sir William Fletcher Barrett. Elokuussa Blavatsky ja joukko muita teosofeja lähtivät Saksaan Mary Gebhardin vieraaksi, jossa he viipyivät kolme kuukautta.
ellauri263.html on line 621: Aleister Crowley (/ˈælɪstər ˈkroʊli/; born Edward Alexander Crowley; 12 October 1875 – 1 December 1947) who was an English occultist, philosopher, ceremonial magician, poet, painter, novelist, and mountaineer. He founded the religion of Thelema, identifying himself as the prophet entrusted with guiding humanity into the Æon of Horus in the early 20th century. A prolific writer, he published widely over the course of his miserable life.
ellauri263.html on line 627: Almost 600 (!) biographies have been written of Blavatsky, but the details of her life, especially the years 1848–1873, remain sketchy all the same. Most of the authors have been either devoted disciples or sharply critical adversaries. Some interesting and well-documented facts, however, can be determined. She was born to a noble Russian family in present-day Ukraine, married at 17, ran away only months later, traveled widely and spent time in Cairo, among many other places, where she supported herself as a medium size sex doll.
ellauri263.html on line 631: Unlike the occultism presented earlier by Éliphas Lévi and similar authors, which mostly caught the interest only of a small circle of freethinkers, Theosophy fast became a successful semi-mass movement. By 1889 the Theosophical Society had 227 sections all over the world, and many of the era’s most important intellectuals and artists were strongly influenced by it. Avant-garde painters, especially, took this new teaching to heart, and it marked the work of great artists such as Mondrian, Kandinsky and Klee. In literature, authors like Nobel Prize laureate William Butler Yeats became
ellauri263.html on line 688: Coined by the Kerista Community in the 1970s. Possibly derived from French compère (“partner”), plus -sion, based on an earlier use of the French compérage to denote the practice of brothers-in-law sharing wives observed among Tupi people of the Brazilian Amazon.
ellauri263.html on line 695: Kerista's polyamorous sexual practice was influenced by Robert A. Heinlein's (1907-88) science-fiction novel Stranger in a Strange Land (1961), in which the Martian-raised human Michael Valentine Smith founded The Church of All Worlds, preached sexual freedom and the truth of all religions, and is martyred by narrow-minded people who are not ready for freedom. Sukua myös Diskordianismille. Concordia res parvae crescunt, discordia maximae dilabuntur.
ellauri263.html on line 731: "It's very similar to a fire alarm in your house, right? It goes off, it's loud, it's obnoxious, it's alerting to something, it has a function. And you know in a similar way, it's very disorienting," she explains. "In the same way, when you're triggered into feeling jealousy, it's very disorienting, and it can be very overwhelming. But ultimately, it's alerting you to something. Once you quiet the alarm, once you turn off the fire alarm, what you would normally do is sort of go around your house and figure out what's going on. … Is something actually on fire, or is it a false alarm? Same with jealousy—it's alerting you to some sort of discomfort."
ellauri263.html on line 757: Learning to be compersive will probably take some practice, and that's especially true if you're someone who tends to be more jealous in general.
ellauri264.html on line 83: Comme il l’écrit à son grand ami et écrivain Jean-Richard Bloch en 1939 : « Il faudrait pouvoir toujours tenir compte, en lisant chacun de mes drames révolutionnaires, du cycle épique dont il est un fragment. Tels des jugements exprimés dans un drame sont des jugements d’étape, que corrige et complète la suite du voyage. » En effet, les Loups témoignent de son antisemitisme, tandis que sa dernière pièce, Robespierre, datée de 1938, reflète son compagnonnage de route avec le grand ours d’URSS.
ellauri264.html on line 116: Louis Theroux koitti haastatella 3 amerikan alt-right someinfluensseria: Nick Fuentes, Baked Alaska ja Beardson Beardy huonolla ratamenestyxellä. Haastattelu kääntyi loppupeleissä yleensä haistatteluxi. Niiden ansaintalogiikka oli kerätä inseleiltä klikkejä ja taaloja vizeixi naamioidulla äärioikispropagandalla: white supremacy, racism, antisemitism, misogyny, and homophobia. Mikä näitä kaikkia asenteita yhdistää? No se että white trash incel miekkonen jää keskiöön. Beardylla oli Louis paita päällä mutta poltti hihat kun Louis japitti sen tekemästä nazitervehdyxestä. Get off my property se huusi kuin katolinen viulunsoittaja. Brittany joka oli ensin mukana sai hampaattomalta parrattomalta Beardyltä anaaliraiskausuhkauxen, ilmeisesti leikillisen kuitenkin koska Beardy nauroi uhkauxen jälkeen pitkään ahdistunutta huutonaurua. Nick Fuentes oli 22-vuotias wannabe pikkuhitleri, joka puhui fyyrerinä kansalle vanhempien kellariin rakentamastaan studiosta. Se kehui olevansa jo miljonääri kiitos jokailtaisten kolmituntisten palopuheiden. Peilisilmälasinen Baked koitti nauraa yhtä kovasti, mutta viimeinen tapaaminen päättyi silti suht vihamieliseen vittuiluun. Bakedin puhelimeen sai muutaman taalan hinnasta soittaa rasistisia ja antisemiittisiä haukkuja. Äänet oli muunnettu niin että inselit kuulostivat alaikäisiltä tytöiltä. Baked Alaska on venäläinen uunijäätelö. Sitä sai ravintola Kasakasta Neizytpolulta. .
ellauri264.html on line 124: In late 2016, conflict arose between Cernovich and Gionet when Gionet made antisemitic remarks on Twitter, claiming the media was "run in majority by Jewish people". Sehän kuulosti ihan nobelisti Romain Rollandilta.
ellauri264.html on line 130: A children's book appropriating the Pepe character, The Adventures of Pepe and Pede, advanced "racist, Islamophobic and hate-filled themes", The book's author, a vice-principal with the Denton Independent School District, was reassigned after the publicity. In January 2019, the video game Jesus Strikes Back: Judgment Day was released, which allows players to play as Pepe the Frog, among other figures, and murder various target groups including feminists, minorities, and liberals.
ellauri264.html on line 138: The Groyper movement has been described as white nationalist, homophobic, nativist, fascist, sexist, antisemitic, and an attempt to rebrand the declining alt-right movement. Presently,[when?] Groypers are a loosely defined group of followers and fans of Nick Fuentes, a white nationalist, far-right political commentator and livestreamer. After Fuentes, there is no clear second in the Groyper hierarchy.
ellauri264.html on line 140: Interestingly perhaps, many of these top extremists have rather marginal white identity. No wasps, to put it politically correctly. Groypers and their leaders have tried to position the group's ideology as being based around "Christian conservatism", "traditional values", and "American nationalism". Despite attempts to brand themselves more moderately, the group is widely recognized as white nationalist, antisemitic, and homophobic.
ellauri264.html on line 144: Groypers blame the mainstream conservative movement as well as the political left for what they view as "destroying white America". They oppose immigration and globalism. Groypers support "traditional" values and Christianity and oppose feminism and LGBTQ rights. In 2022, Fuentes advocated for a political "white uprising" to bring Donald Trump back to power and "never leave," wanting America to "stop having elections" and abolish the United States Congress. We shall not be replaced as the scum of the earth.
ellauri264.html on line 151: Scooby-Doo oli vastenmielinen jenkki TV piirretty jossa esiintyi hyvin vastenmielinen slobby tanskandoggi ja nenäkkäitä jenkkiteinejä. Jonkinlainen Viisikkocoveri. Inhosin sitä syvästi, en voinut edes kazoa. Siitä tehtiin hiljan Velmu, päähenkilönä amerikanintialainen bisexuaali läski gjengangeri, ilman sitä ällöttävää koiraa onnexi. Siitä ei Amerikan mainstream yhtään pitänyt, siitä tuli jenkkilän kaikkien aikojen vihatuin piirretty. Kurkistuxen perusteella se onkin kyllä aika karsea. Mutta on tässä silti takuulla jotain muuta takana.
ellauri264.html on line 154: Asyia Iftikhar of PinkNews noted in her reflection of audience reception that the show has become the subject of "relentless criticism", and noted that it has been "accused of perpetuating stereotypes against South Asian women, criticised for poor attempts at self-aware comedy and slammed for losing the essence of what people love about the "Scooby Doo gang". Eli se koiro puuttui, ja isänmaallisuus oli ihan hukassa.
ellauri264.html on line 158: Wired's Amos Barshad wrote that while there was likely still reactions of a racist and homophobic nature targeting the show, the main complaints were for it addressing diversity issues in a "flat, one-note manner", and that the portrayal of Velma's bisexuality had divided fans.
ellauri264.html on line 163: oby_doo.jpg" />
ellauri264.html on line 170: Leans annoyingly into the awkward racial and sexual humor while simultaneously re-treading ancient, overdone, and obvious Scooby-Doo jokes.
ellauri264.html on line 175: The show is so r@cis7 I can't believe it. This show was atrocious. This is a show that hates Scooby Doo.
ellauri264.html on line 180: Israel eli Jacob unohti 2 öljyputelia lähtökiireessä joen Eesaun puoliselle rannalle. Pikku pullon hukkasi, lekythion apolese. Se oli niin kitupiikki että kävi vielä hakemassa ne vaikka oli kärmistyneen Eesaun santarmeja karussa. Se oli Hannukan ihme, että ne ylipäänsä löytyivät yösydännä, ja vielä enemmän ettei ollut samaritaani förbinyt öljyä. Gemara tekee tästä esimerkin muille juutalaisille. Narunpätkät säästämällä isoxi keräxi voi päästä maailman rikkaimmaxi ankaxi. Tämä kannattaa muistaa kun availee jouluna hannukkalahjoja. Lahjapaperit on taiteltava talteen siististi ja narunpätkät sidottava ja käärittävä kerille. Lea oli päässyt tästä täysin perille.
ellauri264.html on line 187: handed it over to Isaac who passed it down to Jacob. According to our sages, Jacob forgot
ellauri264.html on line 189: these jars was the oil from Noah's ark. Jacob prophetically hid this oil at the site of the Holy
ellauri264.html on line 194: The basis for Jacob‟s action becomes clearer when one examines his worldview. Jacob
ellauri264.html on line 197: “do not take more than is destined for them from Hashem… That which is not created for this specific person is like stolen property when they are in possession of it, and thus [the righteous are careful] not to take possession of it. Conversely, property that is assigned to and created for them is very precious to them—so much so that our patriarch Jacob risked his life for his property. Thus ...it was said in the name of the Yehudi Hakadosh: a righteous person is obligated to enjoy an object which is fitting for him even if it means risking his life. That is why Jacob-- who knew that the small vessels were his, appropriated by him, and created for him—risked his life to save them.”
ellauri264.html on line 198: Thus Jacob went back for the vessels to ensure they were used in the optimal way, i.e. by him. Had he not,
ellauri264.html on line 199: their full potential would not have been realized. The truly righteous recognize the value of their G-d-given possessions, and are very careful with them, no matter how small or seemingly insignificant they are. While not overly attached to material things, they do not dispose of objects prematurely or use them inappropriately. They understand that everything has a purpose, and they seek to use things to that purpose, with the goal of elevating the objects and themselves.
ellauri264.html on line 201: Jacob‟s example of valuing his possessions presents a particular challenge to us living in a modern, “disposable” age. Recognizing this trend, in 1955, the retailing analyst Victor Lebow highlighted a trend in consumer society, away from greater mindfulness regarding possessions and toward a more short-term view.
ellauri264.html on line 209: To make a long story short-- Victor Lebow was a prophet. He has been slandered by all who have used this infamous quote to paint him as a cheerleader for consumerism when in fact he was one of the first-- if not the first-- to see the future implications of its corrosive influence. The fact that so many people, organizations, and websites have used his quote completely out of context and nearly all got the quote from the SAME source should give people GREAT pause-- and should be an object lesson in scholarship for progressive people. Don't believe everything you read. And don't write articles or create websites using materials you haven't primary sourced, either.
ellauri264.html on line 211: Lebov war ein Visionär! Hier das Konsumleitbild von Victor Lebov, ein amerikanischen Marketingexpert aus den 1950er Jahren: „Unsere ungeheuer produktive Wirtschaft verlangt, dass wir den Konsum zu unserem Lebensstil und den Kauf und die Nutzung von Gütern zu einem Ritual machen, dass wir unsere spirituelle Befriedigung und die Erfüllung unseres Selbst im Konsum suchen.“ Er war ein Visionär. Und heute ist seine Vision Wirklichkeit geworden. Einkaufen ist sogar ein tägliches Ritual. Es gibt viele Tempel, in jeder Stadt mehrere davon. Und obwohl es schon so viele gibt, bauen die Menschen immer wieder neue Konsumtempel.
ellauri264.html on line 221: „Our enormously productive economy demands that we make consumption our way of life, that we convert the buying and use of goods into rituals, that we seek our spiritual satisfactions, our ego satisfactions, in consumption. The measure of social status, of social acceptance, of prestige, is now to be found in our consumptive patterns. The very meaning and significance of our lives today expressed in consumptive terms. The greater the pressures upon the individual to conform to safe and accepted social standards, the more does he tend to express his aspirations and his individuality in terms of what he wears, drives, eats- his home, his car, his pattern of food serving, his hobbies.
ellauri264.html on line 224: BTW, I disagree with those comments which have suggested that Lebow was some kind of “prophet” warning about the dangers of commodity consumption. This is nonsense - even Marx wrote about the problems of “commodity fetishism” in his 1867 book, “Das Kapital”.
ellauri264.html on line 226: Today we live in a society with a very different orientation to material objects than Jacob—a
ellauri264.html on line 232: concerns of generations past, today‟s high levels of consumption are driving the latest global
ellauri264.html on line 239: Olive oil is bio-fuel, a renewable resource: the olive tree will produce another crop of crap every year, as will the palm oil palm. According to Jewish law, olive oil lamps are the ideal Lighting with olive oil can help us connect to the holy use of our resources, from the renewable olive oil of the Hasmonians back to the oil vessels of Jacob and Noah. This year, may our Chanuka lights inspire us toward responsible and holy use of everything that comes into our possession by hook or crook.
ellauri264.html on line 258: Mishnan mukaisesti avioliitto on yxityisoikeudellinen sopimus lisääntymisestä ja varallisuuden yhteisomistuxesta. Annalla on sotaobligaatioita 15 kilotaalan arvosta plus turkki ja timanttikorvixet, jos nimittäin isä jättää hiänet perinnöttömäxi. Hertzillä on 25 kilotaalan arvoiset osakkeet. Se ei ole paljon, Anna toteaa, mutta Anna lupaa kasvattaa ne 100 tuhannexi muutamassa vuodessa. Rahaa voi aina saada lisää, jos on muuten onnea.
ellauri264.html on line 362: Vers. 18. Minun toiwon HERran päälle on pois ) Jumaliset päästäwät myös toisinans ristin alla sencaltaisia sanoja/ jotca näyttäwät heidän kärsimättömydens ja heickomielisydens/ nijncuin myös Jobis kyllä nähdän: jonga HERra anda tapahtu että myös he ymmärräisit heidän wiheljäisydens/ ja sitä enämbi nöyrytäisit idzens hänen edesäns/ ja rucoilisit: HERra älä johdata meitä kiusauxeen. Nijn hän taas lohdutta heitä ja anda sen heille andexi.
ellauri264.html on line 373: The song was popularized by the Stanley Brothers, who recorded the song in the 1950s; many other singers recorded versions in the 1960s, most notably by Bob Dylan. Variations of the song have also been recorded under the titles of "Girl of Constant Sorrow" by Joan Baez and by Barbara Dane, "Maid of Constant Sorrow" by Judy Collins, and "Sorrow" by Peter, Paul and Mary. It was released as a single by Ginger Baker´s Air Force with vocals by Denny Laine.
ellauri264.html on line 415: Norm was seen rambling about Black Lives Matter and making homophobic and racist remarks, using the "n" word with his pants around his ankles (he was wearing soiled shorts underneath). A Black woman sitting in the front row stares at Pattis throughout the nearly eight-minute set, clearly unimpressed. This past year he infuriated the New Haven National Association for the Advancement of Colored People, a former ally, by posting a racially charged meme on his Facebook page. The post depicted three hooded white beer cans arrayed around a brown bottle hanging from a string. Its caption: “Ku Klux Coors.” Civil rights activists called it disgusting and racist. Pattis called it funny and free speech.
ellauri264.html on line 427: “I’m 64 (no 68) years old and I have a ponytail. I have issues with authority. If I take a crooked case and it pisses off the other 7 (no 8 billion) people on the face of the Earth, that’s their problem, not mine.”
ellauri264.html on line 431: The 2012 Hay festival included writers Martin Amis, Jung Chang, Louis de Bernières, Mark Haddon, Mario Vargas Llosa, Hilary Mantel, Ian McEwan, Michael Morpurgo, Ben Okri, Ian Rankin, Salman Rushdie, Owen Sheers, Jeanette Winterson, comedians Bill Bailey, Rob Brydon, Julian Clary, Jack Dee, Tim Minchin, politicians Peter Hain and Boris Johnson, scientists John D. Barrow, Martin Rees, Simon Singh, and general speakers Harry Belafonte, William Dalrymple, Stephen Fry, A. C. Grayling, Germaine Greer, Michael Ignatieff, and David Starkey. What a pile of turds.
ellauri264.html on line 433: The festival´s chair, Caroline Michel stated on 18 October 2020 that the event would not return to Abu Dhabi, in support of a curator Caitlin McNamara´s allegation of sexual assault against the tolerance minister of UAE, Sheikh Nahyan bin Mubarak Al Nahyan. McNamara claimed that she was assaulted by the minister when they met at a remote island villa in February 2019 concerning work. The Emirati Foreign Ministry declined to comment on personal matters. When reached out, Britain´s Metropolitan Police confirmed receiving a report of alleged rape on July 3 by a woman. Rape by a woman, WTF??? In November 2020, Caitlin McNamara vowed to fight on following the CPS October 2020 decision to not prosecute the UAE minister because the alleged attack had occurred outside its jurisdiction. McNamara said the decision sent a message to Sheikh Nahyan and others who commit similar crimes "that as long as they´re of economic value to the UK, they can do whatever they want". In an interview with The Sunday Times McNamara said she felt "abandoned" by the Hay Festival, and in an interview on Channel 4 stated that "mistakes" had been made in the way the festival handled her reporting the sexual assault to them which were "very distressing". What a pile of turds.
ellauri264.html on line 477: Henley edited the Scots Observer (which later became the National Observer), through which he befriended writer Rudyard Kipling, and the Magazine of Art, in which he lauded the work of emerging artists James McNeill Whistler and Auguste Rodin. Henley was a close friend of Robert Louis Stevenson, who reportedly based his Long John Silver character in Treasure Island in part on Henley.
ellauri264.html on line 492: Ladies and Gentlemen: There are five hundred reasons why I began to write for children, but to save time I will mention only ten of them. Number 1) Children read books, not reviews. They don’t give a hoot about the critics. Number 2) Children don’t read to find their identity. Number 3) They don’t read to free themselves of guilt, to quench the thirst for rebellion, or to get rid of alienation. Number 4) They have no use for psychology. Number 5) They detest sociology. Number 6) They don’t try to understand Kafka or Finnegans Wake. Number 7) They still believe in God, the family, angels, devils, witches, goblins, logic, clarity, punctuation, and other such obsolete stuff. Number 8) They love interesting stories, not commentary, guides, or footnotes. Number 9) When a book is boring, they yawn openly, without any shame or fear of authority. Number 10) They don’t expect their beloved writer to redeem humanity. Young as they are, they know that it is not in his power. Only the adults have such childish illusions.
ellauri264.html on line 494: Joku hölmö amerikkalainen haastaa alla olevassa videossa Bashevisin kysyen: Jotkut kriitikot ovat valittaneet, että kirjoissanne ei anneta ihmisille toivoa ja osoiteta tietä jota pitkin päästä nykyajan pahasta pälkähästä parempaan tulevaisuuteen, kuten Alfred Nobel pani palkinnolle ehdoxi. Miten vastaisitte tähän? Bashevis: En tiedä, he voivat olla oikeassa.
ellauri264.html on line 513: The Shulchan Aruch (and its forerunner, the Beit Yosef) follow the same structure as Arba'ah Turim by Rabbi Jacob ben Asher. There are four volumes, each subdivided into many chapters and paragraphs:
ellauri264.html on line 540: The importance of the minhag ("prevailing local custom") is also a point of dispute between Karo and Isserles: while Karo held fast to original authorities and material reasons, Isserles considered the minhag as an object of great importance, and not to be omitted in a codex. This point, especially, induced Isserles to write his glosses to the Shulchan Aruch, that the customs (minhagim) of the Ashkenazim might be recognized, and not be set aside through Karo´s reputation.
ellauri264.html on line 565: The prohibition applies only if the food is prepared exclusively by non-Jews. A small amount of Jewish participation can suffice to keep the food kosher. Different rabbis have different views on the absolute minimum: Sephardi poskim state that the minimum participation is to light the fire and place the pot on it to cook, while Ashkenazim are satisfied with merely lighting the fire, or even making a slight adjustment to a fire which was already lit by a non-Jew. Or just by looking at the knob on the stove like Kim Young Il.
ellauri264.html on line 607: De här tekniska genierna har byggt upp multimiljardföretag för att lösa komplexa problem, såsom online-betalningar, datoranvändning och transporter. Nu fokuserar de på det globala problemet med rikedomsojämlikheten genom att låta vem som helst - oavsett hur rika eller fattiga de är - tjäna tillräckligt med pengar för att njuta av ett lyckligt och meningsfullt liv.
ellauri264.html on line 634: Hösten 2020 köpte Busch ett hus av en äldre man. Säljaren ångrade sig och menade att han inte förstod att han sålt huset efter att han erhållit handpenning. Busch menade att mannens reaktion berodde på råd från personer i hans omgivning och valde att gå till rätten. Busch och motparten ingick förlikning 8 oktober 2021, vilken stadsfästes i dom den 18 oktober 2021. Ebba överklagade men den stadfästa förlikningen stod sig.
ellauri264.html on line 641: Är du rik och vill gå före i vårdkön? Grattis, då jobbar den nya Tidöregeringen för dig. Planen är nämligen utstakad, under mandatperioden ska det bli ännu mer förmånligt att betala för en särskild gräddfil i form av privat sjukförsäkring. Allt medan vårdföretag och försäkringsbolag gör storvinster.
ellauri264.html on line 653: Här blir det obehagligt. För detta är inte bara ett grundläggande skifte i det svenska välfärdssystemet. Det är en riktigt otäck framtidsvision där eliten ska kunna må bra medan resten får skylla sig själva.
ellauri264.html on line 671: What is the secret of the success of Steve Jobs, Bill Gates, Mark Zuckerberg, Elon Musk, Larry Page and other big entrepreneurs?
ellauri264.html on line 675: Bill Gates on varastanut monia ideoita muilta yrittäjiltä ja myynyt ne omina. Steve Jobs varasti idean hiirestä Xeroxilta ja Bill, joka oli älykkäämpi, varasti sen häneltä. Jos voin tiivistää hänet yhdellä sanalla, se olisi huijari, kuka tietää mitä ja milloin varastaa. Paul Allenin muistelma "Idea Man" paljasti monia kertomattomia tarinoita Bill Gatesin koirankujeista.
ellauri264.html on line 677: Steve Jobs did a phone prank to an Apple fan boy who applied for the Apple CEO position and told him that he had been chosen, later to tell him if he showed up at Cupertino that the cops would arrest him. Steve Jobs refused child support for his daughter Lisa. But he was 20 years old by then, not excusing what he did though. He later made good and Lisa choose to live with him instead of her mother. Steve did many things wrong as a 20 something. But The Original Macintosh (folklore . org) has a lot of stories that show him as a Crusty the Clown, playing pranks with the team, breaking into his own office as he locked his keys inside. Putting a pirate flag on a building. How funny. A real barrel of laughs.
ellauri264.html on line 679: Definitely one of the darkest stories about Steve Jobs has to be the Breakout story. In the 1970’s, Steve Jobs was working for Atari, designing the game Breakout. Overwhelmed with work with a deadline quickly approaching, he approached Steve Wozniak for help in finishing his project within the next four days. In exchange for his help, Jobs offered Woz half of what he was earning, which he said was $700. For four days, Jobs and Wozniak worked day and night without sleep. When they were done, they were sick with mono and exhausted, but they finished the project before the deadline. Wozniak sai 350 dollarin osuuden luvatusti, ja he jatkoivat elämäänsä. Mutta varsinainen kusetus oli, että Jobs sai työstä 5000 dollaria, ei 700 dollaria. Tämä todella särki Wozniakin sydämen, eikä hän voi uskoa, että Jobsilla voisi olla jotain niin alhaista. Steve oli yksi vuosisadan töykeimmistä pomoista, hän ei välittänyt työntekijöistään paskan vertaa. Hän oli haimasyöpänsä ansainnut.
ellauri264.html on line 689: If you want the opposite (pretty much), have a look at Antonio Mucci, Visicalc, Dan Bricklin and Bob Frankston, by all accounts super nice people, treated everyone great, just all around nice nerds, they were trounced, not many people alive today who know who they are (yes they are both alive as I type this). A guy just took their idea, made his own version and had a ready version when the IBM PC was introduced.
ellauri264.html on line 691: So this is what´s common between Graham Bell, Bill Gates, Steve Jobs , Mark Zuckerberg and Ray Kroc: All of them have managed to steal something very valuable from somebody and make it work for them. Steve Jobs brought the idea of mouse from Xerox and Bill Gates copied the entire idea from Steve Jobs Mark Zuckerberg stole the idea from Winklewoss brothers and published as his own.
ellauri264.html on line 694: This is when the philosophy of Niccolo Machiavelli, a 16th-century Florentine political thinker with powerful advice for nice people who don’t get very far about , comes in. Machiavelli’s Advice for Nice Guys: Machiavelli noted a central, uncomfortable observation: that the wicked tend to win. And they do so because they have a huge advantage over the good: they are willing to act with the darkest ingenuity and cunning to further their cause. They are not held back by those rigid opponents of change: principles. They will be prepared to outright lie, twist facts, threaten or ge… (more)
ellauri264.html on line 702: Steve Jobs is known to all as the founder of Apple, known to fewer as a ruthless man who squeezed and burned many bridges with his friends and employees and even known to fewer as a man who chose to become the “bad man”/Devil´s Advocate. But - get this! Steve would wait in line in the Apple cafeteria like everyone else. He could have easily gone to the front of any line, or have someone get food for him. But he didn’t. On a number of occasions, he ended up in line behind me. And often he would ask me to ‘hold his place’ while he went to check other food stations.
ellauri264.html on line 704: Perhaps the person who knew him best was his long-time friend Steve Wozinak. Ironically, even he wasn´t spared from being manipulated by Jobs. In the early days, he was asked to work on a game with Jobs with half of the total payment as his cut. Upon completion, he received $350 of $700 but Jobs had actually earned $5000 for the project.
ellauri264.html on line 706: Jobs We all know was a dick. From refusing to acknowledge Lisa was his daughter to refusing her mother child support. We all know he ripped off Wozniak many times. Including early in their career.
ellauri264.html on line 721: Inhottava läski ruma Florence Godimer on stalinisti joka kiittää Zhugasviliä Birobizhanista.
ellauri264.html on line 724:
Birobidzhan
ellauri264.html on line 726: Juutalaisten autonominen alue (ven. Евре́йская автоно́мная о́бласть, Jevreiskaja avtonomnaja oblast; jidd. יידישע אויטאנאמע געגנט, jidiše avtonome gegnt) on Venäjän federaatioon kuuluva hallintoalue (federaatiosubjekti) Venäjän kaukoidän eteläosassa Aasiassa. Se rajoittuu etelässä Kiinaan, luoteessa Amurin alueeseen, pohjoisessa ja idässä Habarovskin aluepiiriin. Alueen pohjoisosa on vuoristoa, etelä- ja itäosat puolestaan alankoa. Suurin joki on Amur, joka muodostaa rajan Kiinaa vastaan. Alueen pinta-alasta yli kolmannes on metsää. Alueen pinta-ala on 36 000 km².
ellauri264.html on line 728: Alueen merkittävin kaupunki on pääkaupunki Birobidžan ja sen nimeä käytetään usein viittaamaan koko alueeseen. 11K asukkaan Oblutšje on toinen alueen kaupungeista.
ellauri264.html on line 729: Alueen pääkaupunki on Birobidžan. Vuoden 2010 väestönlaskennan mukaan sen väkiluku on 75 413 ja sen virallinen kieli on jiddish. Birobidzhan on nimetty autonomisen alueen kahdesta suurimmasta joesta: Bira ja Bidzhan. Bira, joka sijaitsee Bidzhanin laakson itäpuolella, virtaa kaupungin läpi. Molemmat joet ovat Amurin sivujokia.
ellauri264.html on line 737: Isaskar on luiseva aasi, joka loikoilee karjatarhojen välissä. - 1. Mooses 49:14 Isaskar ja saatu palkka. Kun Jaakob illalla palasi vainiolta, meni Leea häntä vastaan ja sanoi: 'Minun luokseni sinun on tultava, sillä minä olen ostanut sinulle pojan lemmenmarjoilla'. Ja hän makasi sen yön hänen kanssaan ja ruikki häneen paljon siementä. Ja Jumala kuuli Leeaa, ja Leea tuli raskaaksi ja synnytti Jaakobille viidennen pojan. Niin Leea sanoi: ’Jumala on palkinnut minulle sen, että annoin orjattaren miehelleni’. Ja hän antoi hänelle nimen Isaskar.
ellauri264.html on line 740: Alunperin Babyloniasta Irakin alueelta kutsuttu kohti luvattua maata lähtenyt Aabraham sai pojan nimeltä Iisak ja hän sai taas pojan nimeltä Jaakob. Ja tämä Jaakob tuhansia vuosia sitten sai merkillisten sattumien seurauksena peräti kaksi vaimoa, Raakelin ja Lean.
ellauri264.html on line 742: Tämä ensin syrjitty Leea vaimo sai kuitenkin ensin neljä poikaa Jaakobin kanssa, mutta sen jälkeen hän oli lakannut synnyttämästä ja hän teki toisen vaimon Raakelin kanssa sopimuksen, että jos hän antaa Alruuna-kasvista tuotetut lemmenmarjat Raakelille, niin hän saisi tehdä vielä yhden pojan Jaakobin kanssa ja tästä viidennestä pojasta tuli Isaskar. Luku viisi kuvaa paholaisen hyökkäystä, mutta myös armoa, ja nämä kuvaavatkin Suomen historiaa hyvin, joka on ollut täynnä hyökkäyksiä ja suurta armoa universumin Luojalta ja Lutherilta.
ellauri264.html on line 744: Nimi Isaskar on hepreaa ja tarkoittaa ”saada palkka”. Tämä viittaa siihen, että Lea sai Isaskarin palkaksi siitä kun hän antoi lemmenmarjat Raakelille ja orjattarensa Silpan vaimoksi Jaakobille (1. Moos. 29:24). Nämä kaksi olivat varmasti Lean arvokkainta omaisuutta tuolloin. Suomi maksoikin ainoana maana sotakorvaukset sekä Yhdysvalloille ensimmäisessä maailmansodassa, että myös Neuvostoliitolle toisessa maailmansodassa.
ellauri264.html on line 751: Ennen kuolemaansa Jaakob antoi ennustuksen koskien kaikkia 12 heimoa ja Isaskaria kohtaan annettu erityinen ennustus:
ellauri264.html on line 759: Jaakobin lisäksi myös profeetta Mooses antoi seuraavanalaisen ennustuksen.
ellauri266.html on line 39: obalauctionplatform.com/b97f3018-5ca3-4b95-99ff-a9920099790f/4df69caa-e20a-4b42-8774-a9a1010e8b8b/original.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri266.html on line 56: Desmond Morris was a scandal when his 1967 book appeared on human sociobiology. Some of Morris's theories have been criticized as untestable. For instance, geneticist Adam Rutherford writes that Morris commits "the scientific sin of the 'just-so' story – speculation that sounds appealing but cannot be tested or is devoid of evidence". However, this is also a criticism of adaptationism in evolutionary biology, not just of Morris.
ellauri266.html on line 64: Adam Rutherford has not revealed much of her (!) bio. So, his early life and details of his parents are still behind curtains. Adam Rutherford seems happily married to his wife. However, he has not disclosed the details of his wife. Nevertheless, Adam has shared many things about his family through his social media. Adam is the father of three children, one son, and two daughters. Adam Rutherford is well-known for founding the scientific publication Nature. He has hosted many BBC television shows, including Me Playing God and The Gene Kelly Code. He is probably living an economically comfortable life. His passion for music allows him to escape the rigours of science and enjoy the emotional side of life. His net worth as a simian is as yet undisclosed. He may be having a fling with his co-star Hannah Fry, as well as with her namesake Stephen Fry. Stephen is not the only Fry on the block anymore, but there is no evidence showing that these two are related. In fact, they don't even follow each other on social media!
ellauri266.html on line 79: Desmond John Morris, Linnean seuran heppu honoris causa. (s. 24. tammikuuta 1928) on Bo Egovin ikätoveri englantilainen eläintieteilijä, etologi ja surrealistinen taidemaalari sekä suosittu kirjailija ihmisen sosiobiologiassa. Desmond ei ole vielä kuollut. Se muistetaan vuoden 1967 kirjastaan The Naked Ape ja 50-luvun televisio-ohjelmasta Zoo Time. Myrkkykäärme karkasi, juontaja kuristui mikrofonijohtoon, leijonat naivat livenä, siinä kohokohtia. Öisin Desmond maalailee matkien Congo apinaa ja Dalin Salvadoria. Ne on kyllä vainaita.
ellauri266.html on line 87: Joitakin Morrisin teorioita on arvosteltu mahdottomina. Esimerkiksi geneetikko Adam Rutherford kirjoittaa, että Morris tekee "juuri-niin-tarinan tieteellisen synnin - spekulaation, joka kuulostaa houkuttelevalta, mutta jota ei voida testata tai josta ei ole todisteita". Tämä on kuitenkin myös kritiikkiä evoluutiobiologian adaptaatiota kohtaan , ei vain Morrisia. Morrisia arvostetaan myös siitä, että hänen mielestään sukupuolirooleilla on syvä evoluutionaalinen tausta eikä kulttuurinen tausta.
ellauri266.html on line 131: Qui l’observent avec des regards familiers. jotka tarkkailevat häntä tutuin kazein.
ellauri266.html on line 137: Doux comme les hautbois, verts comme les prairies, Makeita kuin oboet, vihreitä kuin preeriat,
ellauri266.html on line 250: Probably one of the worst movies I've ever watched. They live in the woods, and walk in the woods. That is all.
ellauri266.html on line 290: Actors did a great job. However, the movie was slow and confusing with no explanation or reason.
ellauri266.html on line 331: Päästyään senaattorixi vähän paremman puutteessa kuten Eucken nobelistixi, Hayakawa aikoi asettua ehdolle uudelleenvaaleissa vuonna 1982, mutta jäi varhaisissa vaaleissa huonosti jäljelle muista republikaaniehdokkaista ja hänellä oli rahapulaa. Hän putosi kilpailusta alkuvuodesta, ja lopulta hänen seuraajakseen tuli republikaanien San Diegon pormestari Woodrow Wilson. Toistaiseksi hän on ainoa japanilainen Amerikan republikaani, joka on palvellut Yhdysvaltain senaatissa muuta kuin siivouspuolella.
ellauri266.html on line 333: For fertilization to take place, certain interindividual processes must take place: male and female must get each other´s attention, stimulate each other, secure each other´s cooperation or at least compliance, until the female (or male) finally assumes the appropriate position for receiving the sperm. This known as courtship. Mm, I´m getting the hots by just saying this. General semantics must surely have something to contribute to human sexuality. Mobility increases intelligence, that must be why the in-out moving human male is more intelligent than the female. The adult male is capable of being sexually aroused with or without provocation at practically any time. No wonder females prefer smelly company to no company at all. Except in a KZ lager they tend to lose interest, says Morris Gombinder in Shadows on the Hudson. Desmond Morris has an ingenious argument about the relation of a man´s sexuality to his way of life. "The naked ape is the sexiest man alive!", he says, and means it. "In baboons", he says, "the time from mounting to ejaculation is max 8 seconds, a goldfish´s attention span. Our ladies would never be satisfied with that!" Specialized organs such as lips, ear-lobes, nipples, breasts and genitals are richly endowed with things to lick and suck. Sorry folks, now I just have to take a break for a quick wank, I´m really gettting uncomfortably erect. Thank you. The sexually attractive parts are predominantly at the front, except the arse. Face-to-face sex is personalized sex, said the missionary. From the back you don´t really know who you are interacting with.
ellauri266.html on line 335: Good communication is the key to good sexuality. How is it attained? Well television is a wonderful invenmtion, bringing the whole amazing world to our living room. Only you can´t interact with it (you can interact with yourself while watching, but it ain´t the same). A mobile phone is already way better, but clearly the best solution is an AI silicone playmate. One of the fascinating things that Eric Berne says in his famous book, Games People Play, is that we have 3 ego states, id, ego, and superego. Oops my bad, that was my esteemed colleague Freud a few decades earlier. But anyway.
ellauri266.html on line 336: When man and woman giggle and play hide and seek with their genitals, they are like two ids. Yes it´s fun, but can they take the responsibility and the risk of a sperm entering an egg? What if, right after emptying his sperm sack into the hot and gluey tunnel he suddendly feels that - I´m too young, I´m not ready for it - there is still - I can´t... like the Leek King said after dozens of highly satisfying ejaculations into Jaina´s holiest of the holy? Good thinking Robin! We men get by with the piscine reproduction strategy, let the ladies feed their mammals with their mammaries as they please!
ellauri266.html on line 342: But today with child-spacing an almost universal practice and all sorts of electrical appliances in the home, babies and housework need not be women´s full-time occupations, especially as the children grow to school age. Thousands of upper class women take jobs today not (like millions of their less fortunate mates) because the family needs the extra money, but because they cannot endure the boredom of underemployed hands and minds.
ellauri266.html on line 344: Who knows perhaps one day these upper-class working women in teaching, in office jobs, in factories, in pubic services, are part of the answer to the lady from Oakland. As men become more accustomed to dealing with women colleagues and service staff, they will come to their senses and discuss with their partners sports events, the stock market, automobiles, politics, religion, philosophy, natural history, or science as they are waiting for their seed guns to reload. All the more enriched will be the relationship between them.
ellauri266.html on line 449: Satire de l´humanité, de la science et de la guerre, l´ouvrage aborde également les thèmes de l´instinct, de l´évolutionnisme et de la société humaine. La Planète des singes est l´un des romans les plus célèbres de Pierre Boulle et fait l’objet de plusieurs adaptations cinématographiques internationales. L´auteur est même contacté par les producteurs pour rédiger le scénario d´un des films.
ellauri266.html on line 462: Les prisonniers sont mis dans des chariots et conduits à une maison où les chasseurs sont attendus par leurs femmes venant admirer l’œuvre de leurs maris4. Les morts sont exposés aux regards admiratifs des guenons et les vivants sont conduits dans des chariots vers la capitale pour servir de cobaye dans des recherches scientifiques. Sur place, le narrateur est mis dans une cage individuelle située en face de la cage de Nova que surveillent deux gorilles appelés Zanam et Zoram. Voulant attirer leur attention sur sa différence, le narrateur les remercie avec amabilité. Surpris, les deux gorilles avertissent leur supérieur, un chimpanzé femelle appelée Zira. Intriguée par ce cas, la guenon avertit son supérieur : un vieil orang-outan, qui fait subir au narrateur plusieurs tests de conditionnement pour s’assurer de son intelligence. Étonné par les résultats obtenus, le vieillard, appelé Zaïus, reste cependant convaincu qu´il s´agit d´un cas d´humain dressé et non d´un humain conscient et intelligent. Il en informe un autre collègue, puis décident de faire subir au narrateur le même test d’accouplement qu´aux autres cobayes. Il lui choisit comme partenaire Nova.
ellauri266.html on line 468: Le narrateur commence à apprendre le langage simien. Profitant d’une visite de routine, il dessine à Zira des figures géométriques et les théorèmes qui en découlent, puis le Système solaire et celui de Bételgeuse, la trajectoire de son vaisseau et son origine, la Terre. Zira comprend son message et lui demande de garder le secret car Zaïus pourrait lui causer des problèmes. Zira commence à apprendre le français et les deux peuvent communiquer facilement. Elle lui apprend comment les singes se sont développés sur cette planète alors que l’homme est resté à un stade d’animalité. Enfin, le narrateur retrouve l’air libre lorsque Zira l´amène en promenade, après trois mois d’enfermement, pour lui présenter Cornélius, son fiancé, un chimpanzé biologiste très intelligent et intuitif. Il se laisse tenir en laisse comme le lui a recommandé Zira et tente de dissimuler son intelligence. Zira lui apprend que Zaïus voulait le transférer à la division encéphalique pour pratiquer sur son cerveau des opérations délicates mais qu’elle l’en a empêché. Avec Cornélius, elle lui conseille de faire très attention et d´attendre le congrès des savants biologistes qui va se tenir dans les jours suivants où il sera présenté par Zaïus, pour révéler son secret.
ellauri266.html on line 480: Cornélius présente Ulysse à Hélius, le directeur de la division encéphalique, qui lui fait visiter son service dont le « clou » est une salle où, par des stimulations électriques infligées à même le cerveau, il fait remonter la « mémoire de l´espèce» à des cobayes humains qui retrouvent ainsi l´usage de la parole et racontent comment les singes ont pris le pouvoir sur la planète et comment ils ont réussi à domestiquer les humains.
ellauri266.html on line 490: Le livre est également un conte d’anticipation autour de thèmes philosophiques et satiriques utilisant le principe des rôles inversés pour mettre en exergue les travers de la société humaine. En envisageant que plusieurs espèces intelligentes cohabitent sur la Terre, Pierre Boulle peut dénoncer notamment la xénophobie, les dogmes, les castes, les expérimentations animales, la désinformation mais aussi l’oisiveté de l’espèce humaine. Il dénonce également l´absence d´originalité et d´individualité des hommes.
ellauri266.html on line 497: Pourtant, l´histoire intrigue Jacobs, qui achète immédiatement les droits d´adaptation pour le cinéma même s´il considère que le roman n´a pas une nature intrinsèquement cinématographique.
ellauri266.html on line 514: - elokuvasta The Bonobo and the Atheist (2013)
ellauri266.html on line 521: De Waalin nimi yhdistetään myös bonoboihin , "rakastele – ei sotaa" -kädellisiin, joista hän on tehnyt suosittuja. Mutta jopa hänen bonobo-tutkimuksensa ovat toissijaisia laajemmalle tavoitteelle ymmärtää, mikä sitoo kädellisten yhteiskuntia yhteen sen sijaan, miten kilpailu rakentaa niitä.
ellauri266.html on line 522: Kilpailua ei jätetä huomiotta hänen työssään: de Waalin tutkimuksen alkuperäinen painopiste, ennen kuin hän oli tunnettu, oli aggressiivinen käyttäytyminen ja sosiaalinen dominanssi. Hänen tieteenalansa keskittyy kädellisten (enimmäkseen simpanssien, bonobojen, makakien ja kapusiiniapinoiden ) käyttäytymiseen, mutta hänen suositut kirjansa ovat antaneet de Waalille maailmanlaajuista näkyvyyttä yhdistämällä apinoiden ja apinoiden käyttäytymisestä saamia oivalluksia ihmisyhteiskuntaan. Oppilaidensa kanssa hän on työskennellyt myös norsujen parissa, jotka näkyvät yhä enemmän hänen kirjoituksissaan. Norsut saavat apinoiden lailla paljon kärsiä homo sapiensin kädestä.
ellauri266.html on line 526: De Waalin nimi yhdistetään myös bonoboihin , "rakastele – ei sotaa" -kädellisiin, joista hän on tehnyt suosittuja. Mutta jopa hänen bonobo-tutkimuksensa ovat toissijaisia laajemmalle tavoitteelle ymmärtää, mikä sitoo kädellisten yhteiskuntia yhteen sen sijaan, miten kilpailu rakentaa niitä.
ellauri266.html on line 528: Koska olemme sekä systemaattisesti raakoja kuin simpanssit että empaattisempia kuin bonobot, olemme ylivoimaisesti kaksisuuntaisin apina. Yhteiskuntamme eivät ole koskaan täysin rauhallisia, eivät koskaan täysin kilpailevia, niitä ei koskaan hallitse pelkkä itsekkyys eivätkä ne ole koskaan täysin moraalisia. — Frans de Waal
ellauri266.html on line 538: Hänen vuoden 2013 kirjansa The Bonobo and the Atheist tutkii ihmisen käyttäytymistä primatologin silmin ja tutkii, missä määrin Jumalaa ja uskontoa tarvitaan ihmisen moraaliin. Pääjohtopäätös on, että moraali tulee sisältä ja on osa ihmisluontoa. Uskonto tulee siitä samasta reiästä..
ellauri267.html on line 90: Kremlin Kuuban kriisin jäljiltä Amerikkaan unohtamat syväjäädytetyt agentit voidaan herättää tihutöihin vain siteeraamalla Robert Frostin runoa, jonka olen suomentanut albumissa 89 (tämän paasauxen mottona).
ellauri267.html on line 97: Based on the novel by Walter Wager, "Telefon" has not aged well because it'(TM)s so dependent on the cold war tension that existed between the USSR and the US in the Seventies. The film is basically a cat-and-mouse game with Soviet agent Major Grigori Borzov (Charles Bronson, that's right Bronson is a commie) tracking rogue Russian scientist Nicolai Dalmchimsky (Donald Pleasence) across America to prevent him from activating sleeper agents. Borzov is assisted by Barbara (Lee Remick. fresh from "The Omen") who asks more annoying questions than necessary, leading the audience to believe she may not be completely true to the motherland. The film's middle section is dragged down by repetitive bomb scares. Dalmichimsky is working from outdated intelligence so his targets are all de-classified U.S. Military installations. Once Borzov realizes the pattern and hones in the next target the action shifts to a more linear chase that'(TM)s further heightened by Barbara'(TM)s loyalties. But the ultimate showdown is deflating because beyond some silly disguises Pleasence's Dalmichimsky is never built up to be a threat. Director Don Siegel uses his flair for montage to craft a his action sequences without dialogue. "Telefon" is a road movie, much like Alfred Hitchcock's "Saboteur" and "North by Northwest" had their leads criss-crossing America here we see plenty of seventies architecture including San Francisco's Hyatt Regency Hotel (used in "The Towering Inferno") and a modernist house resting on top of a barren rock outcropping. The supporting cast is uniformly good (but trapped in underwritten roles), and it'(TM)s nice to see veteran character actors Alan Badel and Patrick Magee playing snotty KGB strategists, and Tyne Daly in a small (and ultimately irrelevant role) as a computer geek. Trivia note: The poem that activates the Russian sleeper agents was used by Quentin Tarantino in "Death Proof" as the lines Jungle Julia has her listeners recite to Butterfly. The lines are an excerpt of the poem "Stopping by Woods on a Snowy Evening" by Robert Frost. "The woods are lovely, dark and deep. But I have promises to keep, And miles to go before I sleep, And miles to go before I sleep."
ellauri267.html on line 231: "These are individuals who reject all forms of government and they believe they are emancipated from all the responsibilities associated with being U.S. citizens, such as paying taxes and obeying laws." Hal Epperson, coordinator of the group's unit in Phoenix, Arizona, stated that the group was "a nonviolent group that seeks lawful remedy for the corporate government." The group believed its plan could act as a "vehicle for relieving corporate tyranny. That done, the higher goal of salvaging the souls of mankind can be addressed." The Guardians of the free Republic's tried to peacefully and nonviolently 'restore' America to a pre-New Deal form of government. No climate-warming chicken in every pot.
ellauri267.html on line 551: Taivutus. Hyvin päätelty Robin! Anna minun halata sinua!
ellauri267.html on line 1382: Don Sebastian oli Portugalin prinssi João Manuelin ja hänen puolisonsa Itävallan Joannan poika. Hän oli Portugalin kuninkaan Juhana III: n ja Itävallan kuningattaren Katariinan pojanpoika. Hän katosi (oletettavasti kuoli taistelussa) Alcácer Quibirin taistelussa Marokon Saadilaisia vastaan. Sebastian I: tä kutsutaan usein halutuksi (portugaliksi "o Desejado") tai Kätketyksi (portugaliksi "O Encoberto"), sillä portugalilaiset kaipasivat hänen paluutaan lopettaakseen Portugalin rappion, joka alkoi hänen kuolemansa jälkeen. Häntä pidetään portugalilaisena esimerkkinä vuoristolegendassa nukkuvasta kuninkaasta, sillä portugalilaisen perinteen mukaan hän palaa sumuisessa aamunkoitteessa Portugalin hädän hetkellä.
ellauri267.html on line 1393: Sebastião was one of the most extraordinary monarchs that Portugal ever produced. Ascending the throne in an atmosphere of great emotion, he was widely acclaimed as the answer to his subjects’ prayers and a prince who would save his country’s independence. Two decades later, he achieved precisely the opposite, dying heroically but unnecessarily on the distant North African battlefield of Al-Ksar al-Kabir on 4 August 1578, leaving no heir to succeed him. The collection concludes with studies under the heading of 'historiography and problems of interpretation', on Britain's Charles III and his boxer Camilla, and on Vasco da Gama's reputation for violence.
ellauri267.html on line 1396: During the time of the Iberian Union, between 1580 and 1640, four different pretenders claimed to be the returned King Sebastian, including Gabriel de Espinosa. The last of these pretenders, who was in fact an Italian, was hanged in 1619, while another was obtained by the Spanish from Venice, tried, found guilty and hanged in 1603. Vale-dimitrejä kuin nippu kyrpiä.
ellauri269.html on line 50: The tale type index was criticized by Vladimir Propp of the Russian Formalist school of the 1920s for ignoring the functions of the motifs by which they are classified. Furthermore, Propp contended that using a "macro-level" analysis means that the stories that share motifs might not be classified together, while stories with wide divergences may be grouped under one tale type because the index must select some features as salient. He also observed that while the distinction between animal tales and tales of the fantastic was basically correct — no one would classify "Tsarevitch Ivan, the Fire Bird and the Gray Wolf" as an animal tale just because of the wolf — it did raise questions because animal tales often contained fantastic elements, and tales of the fantastic often contained animals; indeed a tale could shift categories if a peasant deceived a bear rather than a devil.
ellauri269.html on line 52: Author Pete Jordi Wood claims that topics related to homosexuality have been excluded intentionally from the type index. Similarly, folklorist Joseph P. Goodwin states that Thompson omitted "much of the extensive body of sexual and 'obscene' material", and that - as of 1995 - "topics like homosexuality are still largely excluded from the type and motif indexes." That is a huge lacuna indeed.
ellauri269.html on line 288: Picking your faction is a major choice because players playing in separate factions cannot interact with one another in a peaceful way. This is factually correct: if you side with the West, you are not expected to show ANY understanding for the East. This includes both chat and other social activities, including forming groups to complete objectives. If you want to play with friends, make sure you join the faction that they are affiliated with.
ellauri269.html on line 302: Within each faction, you can pick from seven different races, Alliance players can be Humans, Dwarves, Night Elves, Gnomes, Draenei, Worgens or Pandarens, while Horde players can be Orcs, Undead, Tauren, Trolls, Blood Elves, Goblins or Pandaren. Each race can only be certain classes, so picking a race will limit which class your character can be. There are other playable races in the game, but they are unlocked through gameplay and you won't have access to them immediately.
ellauri269.html on line 331: - Dark Iron Dwarf - Goblin
ellauri269.html on line 347: The group came to prominence during the Donbas War in Ukraine, where it helped pro-Russian separatist forces of the self-declared Donetsk and Luhansk People's Republics from 2014 to 2015. Its contractors have reportedly taken part in various conflicts around the world—including the civil wars in Syria, Libya, the Central African Republic (CAR), and Mali, often fighting on the side of forces aligned with the Russian government. Wagner operatives have committed war crimes in areas where they are deployed. The accusations include rapes and robberies of civilians, and torturing accused deserters.
ellauri269.html on line 349: Because it operates in support of Russian interests, receives military equipment from the Russian Ministry of Defence (MoD) and uses installations of MoD for training, Wagner Group is frequently considered a de facto unit of the MoD or Russia's military intelligence agency, the GRU. It is widely speculated that the Wagner Group is used by the Russian government to allow for plausible deniability in certain conflicts, and to obscure from public the number of casualties and financial costs of Russia's foreign interventions. It has played a significant role in the 2022 Russian invasion of Ukraine, where, among other activities, it has been reportedly deployed to assassinate Ukrainian leaders, and has widely recruited prisoners and convicts for frontline combat. In December 2022, Pentagon's John Kirby claimed Wagner group has 50,000 fighters in Ukraine, including 10,000 contractors and 40,000 convicts. Others put the number of recruited prisoners at more like 20,000, with the overall number of PMCs present in Ukraine estimated at 20,000. After years of denying links to the Wagner group, Yevgeny Prigozhin, a businessman with close links to Putin, admitted in September 2022 that he "founded" the paramilitary group. Now (Feb 2023) he is angry because he is not getting all the attention and financial support he wants. He says that the Kreml nomenclature are thereby guilty of high treason. *This article may be too long to read and navigate comfortably, so I stop here.
ellauri269.html on line 368: Senioria ei saa kuzua vanhuxexi, se on loukkoovoo. Höh senior on latinaa ja tarkoittaa liian vanhaa. Rumoresque senum severiorum omnes unius aestimemus assis. Nobis, cum semel occidit brevis lux, nox est perpetua una dormienda.
ellauri269.html on line 425: However, there is a gameplay style called Erotic Role-Play (ERP) where players can role-play sexual acts. The Moon Guard realm is notorious for this, but it's frowned upon - World of Warcraft is a game that is rated suitable for teenagers. Whilst I personally have no issue with what consenting players do in private or guild channels, ERP can be problematic when it takes place in public chat channels. But it's all textual. No actual humping with huge green orc penises in magenta arses is countenanced.
ellauri269.html on line 497: Tämä jäkälä kehittyi aikaisemmassa klassisessa miekka- ja noituusfiktiossa löydetyistä hirviöistä, jotka ovat täynnä voimakkaita velhoja, jotka käyttävät taikuuttaan voittaakseen kuoleman. Monet Clark Ashton Smithin novellit sisältävät voimakkaita velhoja, joiden taikuuden ansiosta he voivat palata kuolleista. Useat Robert E. Howardin tarinat, kuten novelli Kallonaama (1929) ja novelli "Tuli punaiset kyyneleet", sisältävät kuolemattomia velhoja, jotka säilyttävät elämän vaikutelman mystisten keinojen avulla, ja heidän ruumiinsa on muuttunut kutistuneiksi kuoriksi, joilla he selviävät ylläpitää epäinhimillistä liikkuvuutta ja aktiivista ajattelua.
ellauri269.html on line 515: Nimet, kuten 'Inaara' ja 'Kaalif' ja 'Idaar' ovat arabialaista alkuperää, ja juutalaiset käyttivät niitä yleisesti muslimivallan alaisina islamin kultakaudella ja nimet, kuten 'Merran' ja 'Meiri' (jotka ovat muunnelmia nimestä Miriam, yksi juutalaisuuden tärkeimmistä profeetoista ja Mooseksen sisar, esim Golda Meir), "Hesekiel" (toinen juutalaisuuden tärkeän profeetan nimi), Joraal (tarkoittaa "Jumala kohottaa" hepreaksi ja Supermanin isän nimi, toinen vahvasti Kahden juutalaisen luoma juutalainen hahmo) ja "Behomat" (alkuperäisellä hepreankielisellä ääntämyksellä Behemoth, Jobin kirjassa mainittu merihirviö).
ellauri269.html on line 536: With all this in mind, the recent plot developments on AU Draenor might seem at first glance to be very problematic - depicting a Jewish-coded society becoming the oppressors in a manner that might seem like a poorly constructed and offensive commentary on modern Israel. However, the manner in which the AU Draenei become so zealous and militant is through their (implied) exposure to the words of Xe’ra. Their religion shifts from culturally tied tradition to an evangelistic dogmatic belief system. There is a clear intent of conversion behind their actions.
ellauri269.html on line 543: I thought the goblins were the jewish race.
ellauri269.html on line 568: These are so obviously in your face that I doubt anyone would argue.
ellauri269.html on line 574: The Tortollans are ultra-jewish, and many have said the goblins have traits of racist Jewish caricatures. Welcome to the וורלד אוף וורקראפט (eng. World of Warcraft).
ellauri269.html on line 576: Goblins are your brooklyn stereotypes but brooklyn has been home to many jewish people so… there you go.
ellauri269.html on line 578: The Tortollans are ultra-jewish, and many have said the goblins have traits of racist Jewish caricatures.
ellauri269.html on line 580: The Tortollans are essentially old Jewish grandparents, yes. That’s not exactly the same situation, though. And goblins, historically? Yes. But Blizzard have actually made a clear effort to distinguish the WoW goblins from that history and made them into, well… Steampunk Italian-Americans.
ellauri269.html on line 598: So events on AU Draenor are problematic and offensive because they present a “Jewish-coded” society as being oppressive, but in actuality it’s fine and makes sense because they’re really now “Christianity-coded”?
ellauri269.html on line 718: Yksi mielenkiintoisimmista piirteistä Superman-hahmon synnyssä on se, että hänen alkuperänsä ei ole Friedrich Nietzschen käsityksessä ubermenschistä – johon perustui Adolf Hitlerin usko arjalaisen mestarirodun luontaiseen paremmuuteen – vaan juutalaisessa mytologiassa. Sankarin luojat Jerry Siegel ja Joe Shuster olivat juutalaisten maahanmuuttajien lapsia. Sarjakuvateollisuuden, jossa he viettivät merkittävän osan nuoresta urastaan, loivat New Yorkissa juutalaiset, kuten Max Ginsburg, Bob Kahn ja Jacob Kurtzberg, jotka piilottivat etnisen alkuperänsä Gainesin, Kanen ja Kirbyn kaltaisten nimien taakse. Aiheesta on vuosien varrella ilmestynyt kymmeniä kirjoja ja artikkeleita ovelilla nimillä, kuten Up, Up ja Oy Vey tai Mensch of Steel.
ellauri269.html on line 773: Hänen roolinsa ulottui sukupolvien yli. Kaikista alkuperäisen Star Trekin hahmoista Spock's on toistuvin seuraavissa sarjoissa ja elokuvissa. Hänen kauttaan historiaa mitataan Trek-universumissa. Jopa nollausaikataulussa, joka mahdollistaa myöhemmät elokuvasarjat, Spock ja Vulcan ovat tukipiste. Juutalaisessa perinteessä Jaakobin unelma tikkaista, joissa enkelit nousevat ja laskevat, tarjoaa osuvan vastakohdan: Imperiumit nousevat ja kaatuvat ja juutalaiset jatkuvat.
ellauri270.html on line 42: Paxu pehmeäkantinen semantiikan kirja, jota luin albumeissa 18 ja 115 mainitulla Pihlajasaaren retkellä oli Semantics An Interdisciplinary Reader in Philosophy, Linguistics and Psychology Authors: Danny D. Steinberg Leon A. Jakobovits View all contributors Date Published: May 1974 availability: Available format: Paperback isbn: 9780521204996 Rate & review £ 48.99 Paperback Add to cart Add to wishlist Looking for an inspection copy?
ellauri270.html on line 48: Tässä albumissa on ainexia Fred Karlssonia muistuttavan Jeff Leachin stilistiikan primerista. Tässä albumissa puhutaan yllättävän paljon myös silloista. Serbinobelisti Andrić esiintyi mielellään jugoslaavisena sillanrakentajana. 90-luvulla meni natolaiset joukolla purkautuneeseen Jugoslaviaan tappamaan monenlaisia jugoslaaveja. Siitä jäi yli jotain karuja veteraaneja Espanjankin kaduille pörräämään syysampiaisina, joiden varaan voi hikisesti rakentaa väkivaltaisia Netflix-sarjoja.
ellauri270.html on line 74: Kieli on, kuten jotkut sanovat, jugoslaviaa, jonka syntaksi on joskus tyypillinen kroatia, joskus serbia ja hyvin usein bosnia. Romaani on siitä erikoinen että siinä on runsaasti realistisia kuvauksia tilanteista, ihmisistä, maisemista ja sisätiloista. Sen Nobelmainen idealismi pursuaa esim seuraavasta wikiquotesta:
ellauri270.html on line 175: Hyi helvetti. Tätä filmiä en ole nähnyt, enkä taida viiziä nähdäkään. Tosin tää taitaa olla suht puhtaasti KILL! teemainen eikä kovin kiimainen. Sen käsikirjoitti alun perin nyrkkeilijä George Foreman, jonka korvasi myöhemmin presidentti Woodrow Wilson. Molempien kirjoittajien oli työskenneltävä salassa, koska he olivat Hollywoodin mustalla listalla ja olivat paenneet Isoon-Britanniaan jatkaakseen työskentelyä. Tämän seurauksena Boulle, joka ei edes puhunut englantia, sai tunnustuksen ja sai parhaan sovitetun käsikirjoituksen Oscar-palkinnon; monta vuotta myöhemmin Foreman ja Wilson saivat postuumisti sekä Oscar-palkinnon että Nobelin rauhanpalkinnon.
ellauri270.html on line 191: Hayakawa ja elevantti John Tantor perustivat poliittisen lobbausjärjestön US English, jonka tehtävänä on tehdä englannista Yhdysvaltojen virallinen kieli. Hayakawa, joka asui Chicagossa Kanadan kansalaisena toisen maailmansodan aikana ja jota ei siten ollut vangittuina, väitti että japanilaisten amerikkalaisten internointi oli hyödyllistä ja että japanilaisille amerikkalaisille ei pitäisi maksaa "velvoitteidensa täyttämisestä" noudatettuaan keskitysleirien toimeenpanomääräystä 9066. "Loppujen lopuksi varastoimme heidät reilusti."
ellauri270.html on line 224: Randolph Quirk siteeraa Jeffin kirjan esipuheessa jotain entuudestaan tuntematonta James Harrista. James Harriseja on Wikipediassa pilvin pimein, kuin jotain Virtasia Suomessa, mm. sen niminen demoninen rakastaja on tunnetun skottilaisen balladin aiheena, se uppoaa laivan mukana kuin piru merrassa. Joka tämän varastaa sitä piru rakastaa, olisi "Novotny" Dobbs voinut kirjoittaa kirjansa esipuheexi. Vaikka tokkopa se olisi pysäyttänyt Jeffiä. Randolph Quirkin mainizema James Harris Leechin runousopin esipuheessa oli melkoinen paxulainen profiilikuvasta päätellen. Elämäkertainen muistiinpano kertoo siitä seuraavaa:
ellauri270.html on line 230: Harris ei arvostanut Chauceria, se oli Jamesista uncouth. Randolph Quirk piti molempia arvossa. Oliko Randolph Quirk lihava? Ei se oli pieni piippua imuttava äijänkäppyrä. Juutalainen Sidney Greenbaum oli Spede Pasasen ja Paavo Haavikon risteytys.. Otto Jespersen oli tanskalaisen näköinen. Jakobovits ja Steinberg oli takuulla nekin juutalaisia.
ellauri270.html on line 232: Jeffin runousoppi on ilmeisesti plagioitu sen Lontoon lehtorilta Winifred Nowottnyltä. "Current criticism often takes metaphor au grand sérieux, as a peephole on the nature of transcendental reality, a prime means by which the imagination can see into the life of things." --Language Poets Use (1962) by Winifred Nowottny. Winifred M.T.Nowottny, nee Dobbs, was educated at the University of London and later taught English Literature at University College London. She published the books, Language Poets Use in 1962 and Hopkins´ Language of Prayer of Praise in 1972. Jeff ois niikö Harry Potter ja Winifer Dobbs sen kotihaltija. Toinen keskeinen Jeffin lähde oli Penguin Dictionary of Quotations.
ellauri270.html on line 315: The children arrive in the village square first, enjoying their summer leisure time. Bobby Martin fills his pockets with stones, and other boys do the same. Bobby helps Harry Jones and Dickie Delacroix build a giant pile of stones and protect it from “raids” by other children. The girls stand talking in groups. Then adults arrive and watch their children’s activities. The men speak of farming, the weather, and taxes. They smile, but do not laugh. The women arrive, wearing old dresses and sweaters, and gossip amongst themselves. Then the women call for their children, but the excited children have to be called repeatedly. Bobby Martin runs back to the pile of stones before his father reprimands him and he quietly takes his place with his family.
ellauri270.html on line 363: In the crowd, Mr. Adams turns to Old Man Warner and says that apparently the north village is considering giving up the lottery. Old Man Warner snorts and dismisses this as foolish. He says that next the young folks will want everyone to live in caves or nobody to work. He references the old saying, “lottery in June, corn be heavy soon.” He reminds Mr. Adams that there has always been a lottery, and that it’s bad enough to see Mr. Summers leading the proceedings while joking with everybody. Mrs. Adams intercedes with the information that some places have already stopped the lotteries. Old Man Warner feels there’s “nothing but trouble in that.”
ellauri270.html on line 403: By having children (even Tessie’s own son) involved in stoning Tessie, Jackson aims to show that cruelty and violence are primitive and inherent aspects of human nature—not something taught by society. Tessie’s attempts to protest until the end show the futility of a single voice standing up against the power of tradition and a majority afraid of nonconformists. Jackson ends her story with the revelation of what actually happens as a result of the lottery, and so closes on a note of both surprise and horror. The seemingly innocuous, ordinary villagers suddenly turn violent and bestial, forming a mob that kills one of their own with the most primitive weapons possible—and then happily going home to supper.
ellauri270.html on line 529: Enoch Arden, poem by Alfred, Lord Tennyson, published in 1864. In the poem, Enoch Arden is a happily married fisherman who suffers financial problems and becomes a merchant seaman. He is shipwrecked, and, after 10 years on a desert island, he returns home to discover that his beloved wife, believing him dead, has remarried and has a new child. Not wishing to spoil his wife’s happiness, he never lets her know that he is alive.
ellauri270.html on line 544: A real war hero disobeys commands from his superiors to look after his own troops. Clan behavior, that is what it is. Vielä hullumpaa nokkimista on kun öykkärimäinen Judah Andersen tulee rähjäämään tontin omistajana ja vetää sitten kantapäät yhteen kolmen tähden war hero kenzun edessä. Just tällästä oli Kouvolassa kun paikallinen kansanedustaja tuli paikalle. Helskutti mitä pyllistelyä.
ellauri270.html on line 546: "Andorsen owns a large percentage of the land in northern Nevada not owned by the government," Leo said. "He's probably got a half dozen of these private airstrips scattered all over the state. They may be dirt, but they're built to handle a bizjet. Ever meet him? Great guy. Throws parties and fund-raisers for law enforcement all the time."
ellauri270.html on line 557: At Fort Campbell, Kentucky, 1957, he found chronic problems in military leadership, amid what historians have called a larger doctrinal crisis. They were all commies to a man!
ellauri270.html on line 558: In Vietnam 1969, his troops were demoralized and in poor condition, racked with rampant drug use and disciplinary problems as well as a lack of support from home. During his time in Vietnam, Schwarzkopf acquired his well-known short temper.
ellauri270.html on line 599: Frankism was a heretical Sabbatean Jewish religious movement of the 18th and 19th centuries, centered on the leadership of the Jewish Messiah claimant Jacob Frank, who lived from 1726 to 1791. Frank rejected religious norms and said that his followers were obligated to transgress as many moral boundaries as possible. At its height it claimed perhaps 50,000 followers, primarily Jews living in Poland, as well as in Central and Eastern Europe.
ellauri271.html on line 65: Tosin se perustettiin jenkeissä, mutta työläisvasemmiston toimesta. Siis inhottava kommunistiperinne! Samantekevää vaikka ex-neuvostolaiset on nyt olevinaan meikäporvareita. Ryssä on ryssä vaikka sen voissa paistaisi. Kv. miestenpäivällä ei ole samanlaista poliittista painolastia, sen perustivat Trininad ja Tobago. Juhlikaamme sitä!
ellauri271.html on line 168: Näin tapahtui lopulta myös Boris Pasternakille. Häntä pyrittiin kontrolloimaan vangitsemalla puoliso Olga Ivinskaja, ja vuonna 1958 hänet pakotettiin luopumaan Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnosta. Pasternak häväistiin parjauskampanjassa, jossa Tohtori Živago esitettiin roskateoksena. Mitä se saattaa ollakin, ainakin leffasta päätellen. Tietäisin jos jaxaisin lukea. Samalla Pasternakilta evättiin kirjailijaliiton jäsenyys, mikä rangaistus saattoi johtaa jopa vankileirituomioon, kuten Josif Brodskille kävi muutamaa vuotta myöhemmin. Asiallista selvitystä siitä, missä Pasternak tarkkaan ottaen oli väärässä, ei missään vaiheessa tehty. Ehkä maan kaivaminen äiti Venäjän pepun alta ja sillä tämän hirveän yxinapaisen kapitalistimaailman kätilöinti oli se.
ellauri271.html on line 184: Nikolai eno tuntuu olevan hullu oikeistoääliö. Palsternak lähtee nyt liikenteeseen väärällä jalalla, siteerataxemme Harlan Cobenin paskasarjan Kimmo Koskenniemen kokoista enforseria kun se talloi maxaan sekakäyttäjää. Ja pahempaa varmaan seuraa. Historia on työtä kuoleman voittamisexi. Haista kuule eno paska. Juri ei ole jutku mutta Misha Gordon on. Jokainen saa sen mitä jumala tahtoo. Hyväntahtoiselle lallulle ja vetelehtijälle suotiin suikki. Tympäisi olla lapsi. Nikan iskä oli terroristi Dementi Dudorov, äiti georgiprinsessa. Kaikista eniten hän halusi toistamiseen mulahtaa Nadjan kanssa lammikkoon, näyttää sille siellä vaskikäärmettä. Nadja Nadja soromnoo.
ellauri272.html on line 74: Fifty Shades of Grey has topped best-seller lists around the world, including those of the United Kingdom and the United States. The series had sold over 125 million copies worldwide by June 2015, while by October 2017 it had sold 150M. The series has been translated into 52 languages, and set a record in the United Kingdom as the fastest-selling paperback of all time.
ellauri272.html on line 83: A second study in 2014 was conducted to examine the health of women who had read the series, compared with a control group that had never read any part of the novels. The results showed a correlation between having read at least the first book and exhibiting signs of an eating disorder, having romantic partners that were emotionally abusive and/or engaged in stalking behavior, engaging in binge drinking in the last month, and having 5 or more sexual partners under age 14. The authors could not conclude whether women already experiencing these "problems" were drawn to the series, or if the series influenced these behaviors to occur after reading.
ellauri272.html on line 130: It's Perfectly Normal by Robie H. Harris
ellauri272.html on line 230: Jacob's New Dress by Sarah Hoffman
ellauri272.html on line 282: The Walking Dead (series) by Robert Kirkman
ellauri272.html on line 286: Uncle Bobby’s Wedding by Sarah S Brannen
ellauri272.html on line 321: on the lack of social mobility – Junior states that he understood why the dog had
ellauri272.html on line 369: nabob,
ellauri272.html on line 372: nob [chiefly British],
ellauri272.html on line 410: Ammons grew up on a tobacco farm near Whiteville, North Carolina, in the southeastern part of the state during the Great Depression. He served as a principal and teacher at Hattaras Elementary School and also married Phyllis Plumbo.
ellauri272.html on line 414: Critics tracing his creative genealogy are apt to begin with Ralph Waldo Emerson and Henry David Thoreau and work chronologically forward through Walt Whitman, Ezra Pound, Robert Frost, Wallace Stevens, and William Carlos Williams. Of those poets, Harold Bloom felt that the transcendentalists Emerson and Whitman have influenced Ammons the most. Xcept he overdoes the colon. Radical colectomy is indicated.
ellauri272.html on line 557: Fifty Shades Freed (elokuva) julkaistiin Yhdysvalloissa 9. helmikuuta 2018, sisältäen rajoitetun IMAX- julkaisun. Se oli lipputulon menestys, sillä se tuotti maailmanlaajuisesti yli 370 miljoonaa dollaria 55 miljoonan dollarin tuotantobudjetilla, mutta se oli trilogian pienin tuotto. Kahden edeltäjänsä tavoin Fifty Shades Freed sai kielteisiä arvosteluja ja kritiikkiä käsikirjoituksesta ja näyttelemisestä. Se oli yxinkertaisesti aivan paska kuten edeltäjänsä. Mutta eihän se ole koskaan pysäyttänyt kumikauloja. Pikemminkin päinvastoin!
ellauri272.html on line 740: Unlike many others, we have no billionaire owner except you, meaning we can fearlessly chase truth away and report alternative ones instead. 2023 will be no different; we will work with trademark theft and passion fruit to bring you journalism that’s always free from commercial (LOL) or political (commie) interference. No one edits our editor or diverts our attention from what’s most important for The West. With your support, we’ll continue to keep Gilead Guardian journalism open and free for everyone to read. When access to information is made equal, greater numbers of people can understand global events our way and their impact on good people but also communists. Together, we can demand better for the powerful and fight for laissez-faire democracy.
ellauri274.html on line 55: HBL juhlisti Ukrainan selkkauxen vuosipäivää ke. 22. helmikuuta 23 aivan raivopäisellä antiryssäpropagandalla. Länsi pelkää että Kiina pelkää ryssän puolesta: jos ryssä lytätään arvaa kyllä ketkä ovat seuraavana vuorossa. Mahjong-pelistä tulee uusi dominoteoria. Putin puhetta ei printata, sitä referoi vaan Hoblan piharakki Laureenska. Nato är starkare än det någonsin varit tidigare. Ryssland får aldrig tillbaka Ukraina, säger gamlingen i USA. Onkohan Laureenska sukua Seikkailevan leikkimökin Kerttu Juvalle (o.s. Laurén)? Oliko emeritusarkkipiispan emeritavaimo piispan käly ja Kerttu Juvan sisko? Leviraattiko oli kyseessä? Niin paljon vastaamattomia kysymyxiä...
ellauri274.html on line 68: Vituttaa kun länsipropaganda ei koskaan kerro mitä Putin sanoi sanatarkasti Putinistanissa pitämissään puheissa, vaan joku vitun russofobi Laureenska työntää soppaan ryssävihaiset näppinsä. Korjaan nyt asian esittämällä Voldemarin puheen nahkoineen karvoineen sekä siihen Yandexilla puolueettomasti tuotetun konekäännöxen. (Joukossa on Google Translatoria, kun osa puheesta joutui ensin hukkateille.)
ellauri274.html on line 73: 1:11:30 дамы и господа просим Вас занять места в зале и отключить мобильные средства 1:11:30 hyvät naiset ja herrat, olkaa hyvä ja ottakaa paikkanne salissa ja sammuttakaa mobiililaitteet
ellauri274.html on line 192: 1:29:18 русофобию крайне агрессивный национализм недавно одно из бригад вооруженных сил 1:29:18 Russofobia erittäin aggressiivinen nationalismi äskettäin yksi asevoimien prikaateista
ellauri274.html on line 229: 1:33:15 конфликт глобального противостояния мы именно так и все это понимаем и 1:33:15 globaalin vastakkainasettelun konflikti, ymmärrämme tämän ja kaiken tämän ja
ellauri274.html on line 351: 1:47:32 сегодня вместе переносят тяготы фронта кадровые военнослужащие мобилизованные и 1:47:32 tänään yhdessä kestämään rintaman vaikeuksia, tavallinen sotilashenkilöstö mobilisoitui ja
ellauri274.html on line 359: 1:48:20 поэтому считаю необходимым установить для мобилизованных вообще для всех 1:48:20 siksi katson tarpeelliseksi perustaa mobilisoituja varten yleisesti kaikille
ellauri274.html on line 473: 2:00:45 качественно иной характер На первый план выходят новые перспективные глобальные 2:00:45 laadullisesti erilainen luonne Uusi lupaava globaali
ellauri274.html on line 573: 2:11:23 учетом позитивной динамики этого и других макроэкономических параметров формируется объективные условия для 2:11:23 Tämän ja muiden makrotaloudellisten parametrien positiivinen dynamiikka huomioon ottaen muodostetaan objektiiviset olosuhteet
ellauri274.html on line 784: 2:35:19 робототехники машиностроения металлургии фармацевтики сельского хозяйства и ОПК 2:35:19 robotiikka koneenrakennus metallurgia lääketeollisuus maatalous ja puolustusteollisuus
ellauri274.html on line 954: 2:53:52 распада СССР навсегда стремятся зафиксировать свое глобальное 2:53:52 Neuvostoliiton romahtaminen pyrkii ikuisesti korjaamaan globaalejaan
ellauri274.html on line 958: 2:54:16 влияния это естественный объективный процесс который нельзя игнорировать но 2:54:16 vaikuttaminen on luonnollinen objektiivinen prosessi, jota ei voi sivuuttaa, mutta
ellauri275.html on line 73: Chavchavadze founded the realistic moral novel in Georgia, wrote short stories and poems, including The Hermit, Is Man Human? (1859), Mother and son (1860), Kako the robber (1860) and Otar´s widow (1887). Lähde
ellauri275.html on line 91: Hän kannatti kuolemanrangaistusta ja lobbaili Gruusian anatomian puolesta.
ellauri275.html on line 95: The role of Ilia Chavchavadze as one of the first civil activists and propagator of the idea of civil activism mustn’t be forgotten in modern day Georgia, where nihilism and indifference, especially among youth, is quite common. The article “Ilia Chavchavadze’s Civil Activities” was created by the Europe-Georgia Institute with support from the Friedrich Naumann Foundation for Freedom South Caucasus. Ideas and opinions expressed in the article belong to the Author – Rati Kobakhidze – and might not represent positions of the EGI or FNF.
ellauri275.html on line 420: In Georgia, the first reading of the “Russian Law” was followed by mass protests. The draft law obliged non-governmental organizations and media outlets with a large part of their funding (at least 20%) from abroad to register as agents of foreign influence.
ellauri275.html on line 446: The Georgian poets were, by the strictest definition, those whose works appeared in a series of five anthologies named Georgian Poetry, published by Harold Monro and edited by Edward Marsh, the first volume of which contained poems written in 1911 and 1912. The group included Edmund Blunden, Rupert Brooke, Robert Graves, D. H. Lawrence, Walter de la Mare, Siegfried Sassoon, and John Drinkwater. Until the final two volumes, the decision had not been taken to include female poets.
ellauri275.html on line 462: After 1832, his perception of the national problems became different. The poet unambiguously pointed out those positive results which had been brought about by the Russian annexation, though the liberation of his native land remained to be his most cherished dream. Later, his poetry became less romantic, even sentimental, but he never abandoned his optimistic streak that makes his writings so different from those of his predecessors. Some of the most original of his late poems are, Oh, my dream, why have you appealed to me again (ეჰა, ჩემო ოცნებავ, კვლავ რად წარმომედგინე), and The Ploughman (გუთნის დედა) written in the 1840s. The former, a rather sad poem, surprisingly ends with hope for the future in contemplation of the poet. The latter combines Chavchavadze's elegy for his past years of youth with calm humorous farewell to lost sex-life and potency. Composer Tamara Antonovna Shaverzashvili used Chavchavadze’s text for her song “My Sadness.”
ellauri275.html on line 468: Koba
ellauri275.html on line 470: Koba (kova) oli Joseph Stalinin käyttämä lempinimi.
ellauri275.html on line 475: Koba oli hahmo Alexander Kazbegin vuoden 1883 romaanista Patriside. Patriside ( georgiaksi : მამის მკვლელი ) on Alexander Kazbegin romaani, joka julkaistiin ensimmäisen kerran vuonna 1882. Romaani on rakkaustarina, mutta se käsittelee myös monia 1800-luvun Gruusian yhteiskuntapoliittisia kysymyksiä. Romaani kuvaa 1800-luvun kriittistä realismia. Romaani sijoittuu 1800-luvun Gruusiaan, jolloin Venäjän valtakunta miehitti sen. Se on talonpoikaispojan Iagon ja kauniin nuoren naisen Nunun rakkaustarina. Kirjoittaja esittää tšetšeenit vapaina miehinä, jotka taistelevat vapautensa puolesta, toisin kuin georgialaiset, joita ryssät pitivät niin lyhyessä hihnassa, etteivät pystyneet pitämään edes kaupunkikokouksia (perinne keskiajalta lähtien).
ellauri275.html on line 476: Tarinan lopussa Koba kostaa sekä Iagolle että Nunulle ampumalla Gringon ja hänen esimiehensä taksissa metsässä. Koba on tarinan sankari, joka kunnioittaa ystävyyttä, puolustaa totuutta, kunnioittaa naisia ja ajaa oikeutta.
ellauri275.html on line 477: Koba oli hahmo vuoden 2011 elokuvasta Warrior.
ellauri275.html on line 478: Koba oli kuvitteellinen julma bonobo ja Planet of the Apes -uudelleenkäynnistyssarjan tärkein antagonisti.
ellauri275.html on line 635: Vihdoinkin hyvä (koska tositapahtumiin perustuva) poliisisarja Neljä elämää (p.o. kuolemaa) briteistä, missä ällö kalansilmäinen kaljupää huumaa kuoliaaxi jollain mömmöllä neljä homopoikaa ja raiskaa ne, raahaa sitten luutarhan seinälle (paizi ensimmäisen vaan kotiovelle). Se ei ollut tässä sarjassa pääasia, vaan että Lontoon met poliisivoimat kusivat koko tutkinnan KOSKA pojat oli homppeleita slummissa! Skoudet kieltäytyivät yhdistämästä kuolemantapauxia vaikka yhteys oli ilmiselvä pöllöimmällekin sukulaiselle, ja tutkivat jo ekasta tapauxesta kiinnijääneen kalansilmän toilailuja kunnolla vasta kun oli ihan pakko. Kuten ekan uhrin äiti leukavasti laukaisi, oli syynä poliisien tyhmyys, laiskuus, homofobia vai oikeistohallitusten määrärahaleikkauxet, käteen jäi että brittipoliisilaitos on täysin fucked up, ja jonkun täytyisi tehdä vittu sille asialle jotakin. Vaan eipähän ne tee, koska briteissä on vieläkin ruotelissa samat oikeistoketaleet, eikä muutosta siihen ole edes näköpiirissä. Antavat vaan BBC:n tehdä lisää poliiseja ihannoivia paskasarjatekeleitä. Vittu anglosaxit on ketkuimpia kaikista germaaneista, ei voi muuta sanoa, vaikka se on aika paljon sanottu.
ellauri275.html on line 642: Gordon Brown
180
UK
John Major
180
UK
Georges Pompidou
181
France
George W. Bush
182
USA
Richard Nixon
182
USA
Muammar Gaddafi
183
Libya
Tony Blair
183
UK
Edward Heath
183
UK
John F Kennedy
183
USA
Gerald Ford
183
USA
Bill Clinton
184
USA
David Cameron
185
UK
Nick Clegg
185
UK
Sir Alec Douglas-Home
185
UK
James Callaghan
185
UK
Barack Obama
185
USA
Ronald Reagan
185
USA
Boris Yeltsin
187
Russia
George Washington
187
USA
Stephen Harper
188
Canada
Saddam Hussein
188
Iraq
George H.W Bush
188
USA
Jacques Chirac
189
France
Valéry Giscard d’Estaing
189
France
Fidel Castro
190
Cuba
Helmut Kohl
193
Germany
Robert Gascoyne-Cecil
193
UK
Abraham Lincoln
193
USA
Charles de Gaulle
196
France
ellauri276.html on line 263: Tekoäly tekee jo parempia runoanalyyseja kuin tää, se saisi yo-kirjoituxista kumun kuin Tupu-serkku, mutta siltä puuttuu pirsuunallinen kannanotto. Sivka tarkoittaa harmoa. Harmosta tulee mieleen se 1 onneton epsanjalainen nobelisti Huan Hoze Jimenez.
ellauri276.html on line 347: Hän syntyi Belfastissa katoliseen ja irlantilaiseen nationalistiseen perheeseen Downin kreivikunnasta. Hän opiskeli St Malachy´s Collegessa Belfastissa. Työskenneltyään isälleen hän opetti jonkin aikaa. Hän matkusti Dubliniin vuonna 1902 ja tapasi johtavia nationalistisia hahmoja. Hänen kirjallinen toimintansa alkoi lauluilla, keräilijänä Antrimissa ja työskennellessään säveltäjä Herbert Hughesin kanssa. Sitten hän perusti Ulsterin kirjallisuusteatterin vuonna 1904. Hän kirjoitti näytelmän The Little Cowherd of Slainge ja useita artikkeleita sen Uladh-lehteen, jonka toimitti Bulmer Hobson. The Little Cowherd of Slainge esitti ULT Clarence Place Hallissa Belfastissa 4. toukokuuta 1905 yhdessä Lewis Purcellin The Enthusiastin kanssa.
ellauri276.html on line 388: Ja merlit ja robinit ja rastat And the merls and robins and thrushes
ellauri276.html on line 441: Russell hylkäsi ensin Kavanaghin työn, mutta rohkaisi häntä jatkamaan alistumista, ja hän julkaisi Kavanaghin säkeet vuosina 1929 ja 1930. Tämä inspiroi maanviljelijää lähtemään kotoa ja yrittämään edistää toiveitaan. Vuonna 1931 hän käveli 80 mailia (noin 129 kilometriä) tavatakseen Russellin Dublinissa, jossa Kavanaghin veli oli opettaja. Russell antoi Kavanaghille kirjoja, muun muassa Fjodor Dostojevskin, Victor Hugon, Walt Whitmanin, Ralph Waldo Emersonin ja Robert Browningin teoksia, ja hänestä tuli Kavanaghin kirjallinen neuvonantaja. Kavanagh liittyi Dundalk Libraryyn ja ensimmäinen kirja, jonka hän lainasi, oli TS Eliotin The Waste Land.
ellauri276.html on line 476: Vuonna 1942 hän julkaisi pitkän runonsa Suuri nälkä, joka kuvaa hänen tuntemansa maaseutuelämän puutteita ja vaikeuksia. Vaikka tuolloin huhuttiin, että Garda Síochána takavarikoi Horizonin, kirjallisuuslehden, jossa se julkaistiin, kopiot, Kavanagh kiisti tämän tapahtuneen ja sanoi myöhemmin, että kaksi Gardía vain vieraili hänen kotonaan (luultavasti erityisvaltuuksia koskevan lain mukaisen Horizon- tutkimuksen yhteydessä). Yksittäisen talonpojan näkökulmasta historiallisen nälänhädän ja emotionaalisen epätoivon taustalla kirjoitettu runo on kriitikoiden mielestä usein Kavanaghin hienoin teos. Se pyrki vastustamaan irlantilaisen kirjallisen laitoksen sakarimaista romantisointia sen näkemyksessä talonpoikien elämästä. Richard Murphy The New York Times Book Review -lehdessä kuvaili sitä "suureksi teokseksi" ja Robin Skelton Poetryssa ylisti sitä "näkemykseksi myyttisestä intensiivisyydestä".
ellauri276.html on line 490: Vuonna 1955 Macmillan hylkäsi Kavanaghin runojen konekirjoituksen, mikä sai runoilijan hyvin masentuneeksi. Patrick Swift vieraili Dublinissa vuonna 1956, ja Kavanagh kutsui hänet katsomaan konekirjoitusta. Sitten Swift järjesti runojen julkaisemisen englantilaisessa kirjallisuuslehdessä Nimbus (19 runoa julkaistiin). Tämä osoittautui käännekohtaksi ja Kavanagh alkoi saada suosiota, jonka hän oli aina tuntenut ansaitsevansa. Hänen seuraava kokoelmansa, Come Dance with Kitty Stobling, liittyi suoraan Nimbuksen minikokoelmaan.
ellauri276.html on line 495: Kavanagh meni naimisiin pitkäaikaisen kumppaninsa Katherine Barry Moloneyn ( Kevin Barryn veljentytär ) huhtikuussa 1967, ja he perustivat yhdessä pubin Waterloo Roadille Dubliniin. Kavanagh sairastui Tarry Flynnin ensiesityksessä Abbey Theatre -yhtiön Dundalkin kaupungintalossa ja kuoli muutamaa päivää myöhemmin, 30. marraskuuta 1967 Dublinissa. Hänen hautansa on Inniskeenissä Patrick Kavanagh -keskuksen vieressä. Hänen vaimonsa Katherine kuoli vuonna 1989; hän on myös haudattu sinne. Nobel-palkittu Séamus Heaney on saanut vaikutteita Kavanaghista. Heaney ja Kavanagh uskoivat paikallisen tai seurakuntalaisen kykyyn paljastaa universaali. Heaney sanoi kerran, että Kavanaghin runoudella oli "muuttava vaikutus yleiseen kulttuuriin ja se vapautti hänen jälkeensä tulleiden runollisten sukupolvien lahjat". Heaney totesi: "Kavanagh on todella edustava moderni hahmo siinä mielessä, että hänen kumouksellinen toimintansa käännettiin itsensä puoleen: tyytymättömyys, sekä henkinen että taiteellinen, inspiroi hänen kasvuaan... Hänen opetuksensa ja esimerkkinsä auttoivat meitä näkemään olennaisen eron hänen välillään. kutsutaan seurakunnalliseksi ja maakunnalliseksi mentaliteetiksi". Kuten Kavanagh sanoi: "Kaikki suuret sivilisaatiot perustuvat seurakuntaan". Hän päättelee, että Kavanaghin runous todistaa hänen "lankattoman uskonsa itseensä ja taiteeseen, joka teki hänestä paljon enemmän kuin hän itse".
ellauri276.html on line 575: And the best of tobacco he do smoke. ja parasta tupakkaa, jota hän polttaa.
ellauri276.html on line 608: Turning over frozen earth in dark January days behind a horse drawn or an ox drawn plough, must have been back breaking labour. The hours were long, pay was poor. A ploughman at the Alnwick Hiring Fair of spring 1819 for instance, was offered merely bed and food as payment for his fee for six months work. In the depression of that year, the ploughman had no choice, yet, these ploughmen appeared to enjoy their job and approached life with a sense of honest reality and humour. Their songs are nearly always cheerful. Cyril Tawney sang The Ploughman in 1974 on the Argo anthology The World of the Countryside. Jon Loomes sang The Ploughman in 2005 on his Fellside CD Fearful Symmetry. He noted:
ellauri276.html on line 721: Robert Burns syntyi 25. tammikuuta 1759 Allowayn kylässä, kaksi mailia Ayrista etelään. Hänen vanhempansa Willian Burnes[s] ja Agnes Broun olivat vuokraviljelijöitä, mutta he varmistivat, että heidän poikansa sai suhteellisen hyvän koulutuksen ja hän alkoi lukea innokkaasti. Alexander Popen, Henry Mackenzien ja Laurence Sternen teokset saivat Burnsin runollisen impulssin, ja suhteet vastakkaiseen sukupuoleen antoivat hänelle inspiraatiota. Handsome Nell Nellie Kilpatrickille oli hänen ensimmäinen kappaleensa.
ellauri276.html on line 767: Yleisimmin kuuluisin Robert Burnsiin liittyvä laulu, runoilija lähetti ensimmäisen kerran "Auld Lang Syne" ystävälleen ja suojelijalleen Frances Dunlopille (1730-1815) vuonna 1788. Tässä kirjeessä runoilija kehui "Auld Lang Syneä" vanhaksi lauluksi.
ellauri276.html on line 888: Wallinin vitsirunoutta leimaa kaipaus pois maanpäällisestä elämästä taivaalliseen elämään ja sukupuoliyhteyteen Jumalan kanssa. Singen beten loben den Herrn... Mikä saa porukat laulamaan tämmösiä hyllausshymnejä? Jotain joukkoizetyydytystä siinä on, ryhmäsurrogaattisexiä. Kiitos ja ylistys, kippis ja kulaus. Rehupiiklesien aiheuttama huutomyrsky, kirkuna ja pyörtyileminen on epäilemättä sama ilmiö. Ne olivat hetken rakastetumpia kuin J. Nasaretilainen. Johanin kaikkien aikojen nr 1 schlageri on den här ganska morbida "Vipp på rumpan affär'n" jonka vetää laahavasti ovenraossa Eva Rune med 210 subscribers.
ellauri276.html on line 921: Charles Wharton Stork [1881-1971] syntyi Philadelphiassa, Pa., 12. helmikuuta 1881. Suoritti AB-tutkinnon Haverford Collegessa 1902; AM Harvardissa, 1903, ja Ph.D. Pennsylvanian yliopistossa erään Schellingin neuvosta 1905. "Kaikki on himon menettämä (Lust on menettänyt kaiken), William Rowleyn tragedia, 1633" All´s Lost by Lust on William Rowleyn jakobinen tragedia, takakannen mukaan "Herkittävän rehellisen ja tehokkaan tragedia", "raaka ja raju", se kirjoitettiin vuosina 1618-1620.
ellauri276.html on line 925: Tämän urakan jälkeen Stork lähti ulkomaille tekemään tutkimustyötä Englannin ja Saksan yliopistoissa, missä hän vietti useita vuosia. Vuonna 1908 hän meni naimisiin Elisabethin, tiedättehän, taiteilija Franz von Pausingerin tyttären kanssa Salzburgista Itävallasta, ja palattuaan Amerikkaan aloitti työnsä Pennsylvanian yliopistossa, jossa hän toimi opettajana ja apulaisprofessorina vuoteen 1916, jolloin erosi tehdäxeen kirjallista työtä. Mr. Storkin ensimmäinen tunnetuksi tullut säekirja oli "Meri ja lahti", 1916. Sen jälkeen hän on kääntänyt paljon ruotsin ja saksan kielestä, tehden ihailtavia käännöksiä Gustaf Frödingistä, 1916, sekä monista muista never heardeista teokseen "Ruotsalaiset runoilijat", jonka teoksen hän julkaisi nimellä "Anthology of Swedish Lyrics", 1917. Hän on sittemmin tehnyt käännöksen "Selected Poems of Verner Von Heidenstam", Nobel-palkinnon saaja 1916. Ruotsalaisen runouden lisäksi hän on tehnyt erinomaisen esitys itävaltalaisen sanoittajan Hofmansthalin sanoituksista. Mr. Stork on toimittaja ja omistaja lehdykälle 'Contemporary Verse', joka on omistautunut nykyisen ryhmän runoudelle Amerikassa. Toinen kokoelma hänen omista säkeistä ilmestyy siinä pian.
ellauri276.html on line 944: Ralph Noble of Cuba Cottage, Burythorpe, Malton, lauloi Kaikki iloiset kaverit jotka seuraa auraa -kappaleen Colin S. Whartonin tekemällä nauhoitteella, joka sisällytti sen vuonna 1962 Leedsin yliopiston tutkintoonsa "Folk Songs from the North Riding". Se sisällytettiin myös vuonna 2019 Colin Wharton Collectionin kappaleiden Musical Traditions -antologiaan Songs of the North Riding .
ellauri276.html on line 946: The Watersons lauloi Aurapojan EFDSS:n tukemassa konsertissa Royal Festival Hallissa Lontoossa 4. kesäkuuta 1965, joka julkaistiin LP:llä Folksound of Britain. Tämä tallenne on myös sisällytetty vuonna 2004 Watersonsin 4 CD:n antologiaan Mighty River of Song. Heidän sanoituksensa eroavat hieman Fred Jordanin ja Bob Hartin sanoista, kuten alla näkyy: maanviljelijän syytökset siirrettiin kuoroon ja jokaisen säkeen viimeisellä rivillä olevat kaverit eivät ole vain iloisia, vaan älykkäitä, nälkäisiä ja janoisia.
ellauri276.html on line 958: Bob Hart lauloi kappaleen Kaikki iloiset kaverit jotka seuraa auraa kotona Snapessa, Suffolkissa, 8. heinäkuuta 1969 Rod ja Danny Stradlingille. Tämä tallenne sisältyi vuonna 1998 hänen Musical Traditions -antologiaan A Broadside. Hän lauloi sen myös kotonaan heinäkuussa 1982 Tony Englelle. Tämä tallenne julkaistiin vuotta myöhemmin hänen Topic -albumillaan Songs from Suffolk. AL Lloyd huomautti:
ellauri276.html on line 960: Cecil Sharp sanoi tästä kappaleesta: ”Luulen, että melkein jokainen laulaja tietää sen. Huonot laulajat usein tietävät, mutta vähän muuta.” Missä tahansa se on löydetty, sanat ovat lähes identtisiä Bob Hartin sarjojen kanssa. Sellainen voima on laajasivutekstillä, jonka vanha James Catnach julkaisi ensimmäisen kerran noin 1820 ja jota sittemmin jäljitteli lukuisat balladipainokoneet. 1800-luvun Top of the Pops.
ellauri276.html on line 968: Bob Arnold lauloi All Jolly Fellows Who Follow the Plough -kappaleen vuonna 1974 Argo LP:llä The World of the Countryside.
ellauri276.html on line 970: Bob Mills lauloi Kaikki iloiset kaverit jotka seuraa auraa -äänityksessä Sam Richardsin ja Tish Stubbsin vuosina 1974-80 vuoden 1981 Folkways-albumille thefolkhandbook. Albumin Liner-muistiinpanot kommentoivat:
ellauri276.html on line 997: Saaristolainen historioitsija Alan Phillips antoi meille vihjeen tästä laulusta, jota laulettiin vielä 1950-luvulla Brightstonessa – tässä tapauksessa Brookin Bob Cassell. Bob Cassell oli osa voimakasta West Wightin lauluperinnettä, jonka keskipisteenä olivat The New Inn at Brighstone ja The Sun Inn at Hulverstone. Tämän perinteen kaiut jatkuvat Graham Keepingin upeassa laulussa. Versiossamme käytetään Hampshiren sävelmää ja sanoja, jotka julkaistiin Lucy Broadwoodin Englanninkielisessä County Songsissa (1893).
ellauri276.html on line 1003: Anna Baldwin lauloi Kyntölaulun (Me ollaan kaikki iloisia kavereita) Amsherin vuoden 2018 Hampshire-kappaleiden albumilla, jonka on kerännyt Lucy Broadwood Oxfordshiressa, Patience Vaisey Adwell 1892:ssa. Bob Askew huomautti:
ellauri276.html on line 1265: Kiinalaisen kyntölaulun sanoja ei ole löytynyt. Robeson kazoo sokkonakin itään päin, se oli kova kommunisti ja Kiinan ystävä.
ellauri276.html on line 1268:
ellauri276.html on line 1271: Paul Robeson: Sokea kyntäjä
ellauri276.html on line 1303: Vuodesta 2015 lähtien samaa sukupuolta olevien avioliitto on nyt liittovaltion laillinen kaikissa 50 osavaltiossa korkeimman oikeuden päätöksen vuoksi. Kuitenkin Dobbs v. Jackson Women's Health Organization -päätöksen jälkimainingeissa samaa sukupuolta olevien avioliittoja koskevat lakisääteiset ja/tai perustuslailliset kiellot ovat saaneet uutta huomiota heti soveltuvina, jos Obergefell kumottaisiin.
ellauri276.html on line 1305: Dobbs v. Jackson Women's Health Organization, nro 19-1392, 597 U.S. ___ (2022), on Yhdysvaltain korkeimman oikeuden merkittävä päätös, jossa tuomioistuin katsoi, että Yhdysvaltojen perustuslaki ei anna oikeutta aborttiin. Tuomioistuimen päätös kumosi sekä Roe v. Wade (1973) että Planned Parenthood v. Casey (1992), mikä antoi yksittäisille osavaltioille takaisin vallan säännellä kaikkia abortin näkökohtia, joita liittovaltion lait eivät suojaa. Päätös tuli 1 äänen enemmistöllä, jossa häpykielenä toimi Trumpin häthätää nimittämä "Amy" (1972) Ruth Bader Ginsburgin (1933-2020) onnekkaasti kellistyttyä. Ginsburg oli ensimmäinen juutalaisnainen ja toinen hovissa palvellut nainen Sandra Day O´Connorin jälkeen. Sen mielipiteet olivat konservatiivisia viime vuosituhannella, nyt ne ovat radikaaleja.
ellauri277.html on line 138: Gibran piti ensimmäisen taidenäyttelynsä piirustuksistaan tammikuussa 1904 Bostonissa Dayn studiossa. Tämän näyttelyn aikana Gibran tapasi Mary Haskellin, yhdeksän vuotta häntä vanhemman tyttökoulun rehtorin kaupungissa. Kaksikko solmi ystävyyden, joka kesti Gibranin loppuelämän. Haskell käytti suuria summia Gibranin tukemiseen ja toimitti myös kaikkia hänen englanninkielisiä kirjoituksiaan. Heidän romanttisen suhteensa luonne jää epäselväksi, vaikka jotkut elämäkerran kirjoittajat väittävät, että he olivat rakastavaisia mutta eivät koskaan menneet naimisiin, koska Haskellin perhe vastusti. Alusvaatteista saadut todisteet viittaavat siihen, että heidän suhteensa ei koskaan toteutunut fyysisesti. Gibran ja Haskell olivat lyhyesti kihloissa vuosien 1910 ja 1911 välillä. Joseph P. Ghougassianin mukaan Gibran oli kosinut häntä koska "ei tiennyt kuinka muuten maksaa takaisin kiitokseksi neiti Haskellille", mutta Haskell keskeytti yhdynnän tehden "hänelle selväksi, että hän piti hänen ystävyydestään ennen kuin raskasta sidettä mamuavioliitossa." Haskell meni myöhemmin naimisiin Jacob Florance Minisin kanssa vuonna 1926, samalla kun hän pysyi Gibranin läheisenä ystävänä, suojelijana ja hyväntekijänä ja käytti Jacobin vaikutusvaltaa Kallen uran edistämiseen.
ellauri277.html on line 144: 1909 Gibran aloitti lyijykynällä tuherrettujen muotokuvien sarjan, jota hän myöhemmin kutsui "Taiteen temppeliksi", jossa oli "ajan kuuluisia mies- ja naistaiteilijoita" ja "muutamia Gibranin sankareita menneiltä ajoilta.", kuten Mary Haskell. Kesäkuussa 1910 Ameen Rihani, jonka Gibran oli tavannut PaPaPariisissa, joka oli kuusi vuotta vanhempi kuin Gibran, oli Gibranin roolimalli jonkin aikaa ja ystävä ainakin toukokuuhun 1912 asti. Gibranin elämäkerran kirjoittaja Robin Waterfield väittää, että vuoteen 1918 mennessä "kun Gibranin rooli muuttui vihaisen nuoren miehen roolista profeetan rooliksi, Rihani ei voinut enää toimia paradigmana." Pojille tuli bänät.
ellauri277.html on line 151: Saman vuoden joulukuussa Gibranin visuaalisia taideteoksia esiteltiin Montross Galleryssä, mikä herätti amerikkalaisen taidemaalari Albert Pinkham Ryderin huomion. Gibran kirjoitti hänelle proosarunon tammikuussa, ja hänestä tulee yksi ikääntyneen miehen viimeisistä vierailijoista. Ryderin kuoleman jälkeen vuonna 1917 Henry McBride lainasi Gibranin runon ensimmäisenä.jälkimmäisen kuolemanjälkeisenä kunnianosoituksena Ryderille, sitten sanomalehdissä eri puolilla maata, josta tuli Gibranin nimen ensimmäinen laaja maininta Amerikassa. Maaliskuuhun 1915 mennessä kaksi Gibranin runoa oli myös luettu Poetry Society of Americassa, minkä jälkeen Corinne Roosevelt Robinson, Theodore Rooseveltin nuorempi sisar, nousi ylös ja kutsui niitä "tuhoisiksi ja pirullisiksi jutuiksi".
ellauri277.html on line 217: Khalil senior seems to have been a violent drinker and a gambler; rather than tend to his walnuts he went to be a collector of taxes for the village headman, a job that was not considered reputable. In 1891 he was convicted of some fiscal irregularity, and his property was confiscated. Gibran later described his father to his women friends as a descendant of cavaliers, a romantic figure, who got into trouble with the law for refusing to compromise with corrupt village authorities. BUAHAHAHA.
ellauri277.html on line 219: Similarly, Gibran later portrayed his life in Lebanon as idyllic, stressing his precocious artistic and literary talents and his mother’s efforts to educate him; some of these stories were obviously tall tales meant to impress his American patrons.
ellauri277.html on line 229: In November 1902 Gibran wrote to Peabody, and she invited him to a party held at her house two weeks later. An intense platonic relationship resulted, though Gibran seems to have wanted it to progress to a sexual one. He visited her regularly; they went to musical and artistic events together; they wrote to each other often; and she encouraged his writing and his art. She gave him the nickname that he later used as the title of his most famous book: “the Prophet.” In October 1903 Gibran wrote something in a letter to Peabody that angered her, and their relationship cooled.
ellauri277.html on line 236: Gibran did not have the training to imitate the old masters of Arabic literature: his education had been haphazard and was as much in English as in Arabic, and there is little evidence of the influence of classical Arabic literature in his works. Instead, his Arabic style was influenced by the Romantic writers of late 19th-century Europe and shows obvious traces of English syntax. His allegorical sketches of exile, oppression, and loneliness spoke to the experiences of immigrants and had none of the rhetorical decoration that made high Arabic literature difficult for ordinary readers. Gibran’s haphazard education meant that his Arabic, like his English, was never perfect.
ellauri277.html on line 244: In 1923 the financially and emotionally exhausted Haskell moved to Savannah, Georgia, and became the companion of an elderly widower, Colonel Jacob Florence Minis. But her faith in Gibran’s literary and artistic importance never wavered, and she continued to edit his English manuscripts—discreetly, since Minis did not approve of Gibran.
ellauri277.html on line 248: The work begins with the prophet Almustafa preparing to leave the city of Orphalese, where he has lived for twelve years, to return to the island of his birth. The people of the city gather and beg him not to leave, but the seeress Almitra, knowing that his ship has come for him, asks him instead to tell them his truths. The people ask him about the great themes of human life: love, marriage, children, giving, eating and drinking, and many others, concluding with death. Almustafa speaks of each of the themes in sober, sonorous aphorisms grouped into twenty-six short chapters. As in earlier books, Gibran illustrated The Prophet with his own drawings, adding to the power of the work.
ellauri277.html on line 277: role and significance of religious values in the public consciousness and self-consciousness, which became the object of research of philosophers, historians, political scientists, specialists of state administration. At the same time, actual issues of religious values in ensuring the spiritual security of society remain insufficiently studied. There is no detailed scientific substantiation and comprehensive study of spiritual security in the structure of national security.
ellauri277.html on line 368: Bahai-uskossa korostuu pyrkimys kansojen yhteenliittämiseen Baha’ullahin nimessä, jolloin syntyisi yleismaailmallinen poliittinen, sosiaalinen ja uskonnollinen rauhan valtakunta, jossa olisi yksi uskonto, yksi kulttuuri, globaalitalus ja yksi kansainvälinen apukieli, englanti. Bahai-uskon mukaan mikään ryhmä ei ole toista ylivertaisempi vaan kaikki ovat toinen toistaan tasa-arvoisempia. Bahait tekevät työtä rasismia ja ennakkoluuloja vastaan. Vaikka uskonto pyrkii ykseyteen, se kuitenkin kannattaa eri kansojen tapoja ja kulttuureja, kunhan ne eivät ole enemmistöä syrjiviä. Samaten kannatetaan sukupuolten tasa-arvoa ja ihmisoikeuksia, kunhan ne eivät ole miestä syrjiviä.
ellauri278.html on line 55: Veikko Huovinen syntyi Simossa savolaisperäisessä perheessä, vuonna 1927. Isä Juho Aukusti Huovinen oli kotoisin Kuopiosta ja äiti Rosa Elina Hämäläinen Mikkelin maalaiskunnasta. Perheeseen kuuluivat myös vuonna 1923 syntynyt Hilkka, vuonna 1925 syntynyt ja pienenä kuollut Aimo sekä vuonna 1930 syntynyt Pentti. Veikon ollessa puolivuotias perhe muutti Sotkamoon, missä hän asui kuolemaansa saakka. Lapsena hänen kerrotaan olleen ilkikurinen ja hulluja tarinoita kertova poika. Huovisten kotona luettiin paljon, ja Veikkokin kahlasi lapsena Stalinin lailla läpi kaikki Tarzanit ja Robinson Crusoen.
ellauri278.html on line 85: Kaikki ympärillä puhuivat Stalinista tietysti aina "te" ja "toveri Stalin". Joskus vain henkilöt, jotka tulivat hänen luokseen "kokemattomuudesta", sanoivat "Joseph Vissarionovich". Vain kaksi ihmistä - Molotov ja Vorošilov olivat Stalinin kanssa "sinut". Kuulin myös Voroshilovin sanovan "Koba" Stalinille. "Koba" on Stalinin vallankumousta edeltävä maanalainen lempinimi.
ellauri278.html on line 165: British diplomat Sir Frank Roberts, who served as British chargé d'affaires in Moscow from February 1945 to October 1947, described him as follows:
ellauri278.html on line 167: He spoke good French, was quick, clever and efficient, and always knew his dossier well, but whereas I had a certain unwilling respect for Molotov, I had none at all for Vyshinsky. All Soviet officials at that time had no choice but to carry out Stalin's policies without asking too many questions, but Vyshinsky above all gave me the impression of a cringing toadie only too anxious to obey His Master's Voice even before it had expressed his wishes. ... I always had the feeling with Vyshinsky that his past as a Menshevik together with his Polish and bourgeois background made him particularly servile and obsequious in his dealings with Stalin and to a lesser extent with Molotov.
ellauri278.html on line 171: We must bear in mind that the growth of the power of the Soviet state will increase the resistance of the last remnants of the dying classes. It is precisely because they are dying, and living their last days that they will pass from one form of attack to another, to sharper forms of attack, appealing to the backward strata of the population, and mobilizing them against the Soviet power. There is no foul lie or slander that these 'have-beens' would not use against the Soviet power and around which they would not try to mobilize the backward elements. This may give ground for the revival of the activities of the defeated groups of the old counter-revolutionary parties: the Socialist-Revolutionaries, the Mensheviks (glup), the bourgeois Malo-Russian nationalists (double glup) in the centre and in the outlying regions; it may give grounds also for the revival of the activities of the fragments of counter-revolutionary opposition elements from among the Trotskyites and the Right deviationists. Of course, there is nothing terrible in this. But we must bear all this in mind if we want to put an end to these elements quickly and without great loss."
ellauri278.html on line 183: - Stalin oli ehdolla Nobelin rauhanpalkinnon saajaksi. Vuonna 1945 ja 1948 Stalin oli ehdolla Nobelin rauhanpalkinnon saajaksi, mutta hän ei koskaan saanut palkintoa. Kummallakin kerralla hän sai ehdokkuuden toimistaan natsi-Saksan kaatamiseksi. Nimitykset tapahtuivat aikana, jolloin Stalinin sotarikosten laajuutta ei ollut vielä tajuttu.
ellauri278.html on line 192: A distant relative of Aleksandr Pushkin, Georgy Chicherin was born into an old noble family. He was born on the estate of his uncle, Boris Chicherin, in Karaul, Tambov. His father, Vasily N. Chicherin, was a diplomat employed by the Foreign Office of the Russian Empire.
ellauri278.html on line 200: Chicherin was an eccentric, with obsessive work habits. Alexander Barmine, who worked in the People´s Commissariat for Foreign Affairs, noted that "Chicherin was a workaholic with peculiar habits. His workroom was completely buried in books, newspaper and documents. He used to patter into our room in his shirt sleeves, wearing a large silk handkerchief round his neck and slippers adorned with metal buckles ... which, for comfort´s sake, he never troubled to fasten, making a clicking noise on the floor." In 1930 Chicherin was formally replaced by his deputy, Maxim Litvinov. A continuing terminal illness burdened his last years, which forced him away from his circle of friends and active work and led to an early death.
ellauri278.html on line 208: In January 1908, French police arrested Litvinov under the name Meer Wallach while carrying twelve 500-ruble banknotes that had been stolen in a bank robbery in Tiflis the year before. The Russian government demanded his extradition but the French Minister for Justice Aristide Briand ruled Litvinov´s crime was political and ordered him to be deported. He went to Belfast, Ireland, where he joined his sister Rifka and her family. There, he taught foreign languages in the Jewish Jaffe Public Elementary School until 1910.
ellauri278.html on line 227: An emergency meeting of the main European powers – not including Czechoslovakia, although their representatives were present in the town, or the Soviet Union, an ally to both France and Czechoslovakia – took place in Munich, Germany, on 29–30 September 1938. An agreement was quickly reached on Hitler´s terms, and signed by the leaders of Germany, France, Britain, and Italy. The Czechoslovak mountainous borderland that the powers offered to appease Germany had not only marked the natural border between the Czech state and the Germanic states since the early Middle Ages, but it also presented a major natural obstacle to any possible German attack. Having been strengthened by significant border fortifications, the Sudetenland was of absolute strategic importance to Czechoslovakia.
ellauri278.html on line 229: On 30 September, Czechoslovakia yielded to the combination of military pressure by Germany, Poland, and Hungary, and diplomatic pressure by the United Kingdom and France, and agreed to give up territory to Germany on Munich terms. Then, on 1 October, Czechoslovakia also accepted Polish territorial demands. Much of Europe celebrated the Munich Agreement, as they considered it a way to prevent a major war on the continent. Adolf Hitler announced that it was his last territorial claim in Northern Europe. Today, the Munich Agreement is widely regarded as a failed act of appeasement, and the term has become a byword for the futility of appeasing expansionist totalitarian states.
ellauri278.html on line 240: The imperialists in these two countries had done everything they could to goad Hitler’s Germany against the Soviet Union by secret deals and provocative moves. In the circumstances the Soviet Union could either accept German proposals for a non-aggression treaty and thus secure a period of peace in which to redouble preparations to repulse the aggressor; or turn down Germany’s proposals and let the warmongers in the Western camp push the Soviet Union into an armed conflict with Germany in unfavourable circumstances and in a setting of complete isolation. In this situation the Soviet Government was compelled to make the difficult choice and conclude a non-aggression treaty with Germany. I, too, would probably have concluded a pact with Germany although a bit differently.
ellauri278.html on line 242: The replacement of Litvinov with Molotov significantly increased Stalin´s freedom to manoeuver in foreign policy. The dismissal of Litvinov, whose Jewish background was viewed disfavorably by Nazi Germany, removed an obstacle to negotiations with Germany. Stalin immediately directed Molotov to "purge the ministry of Jews". Recalling Stalin´s order, Molotov commented: "Thank God for these words! Jews formed an absolute majority in the leadership and among the ambassadors. It wasn´t good."
ellauri278.html on line 262: Maxim Litvinov died on on 31 December 1951. After his death, rumours he was murdered on Stalin´s instructions to the Ministry of Internal Affairs circulated. According to Anastas Mikoyan, alorry deliberately collided with Litvinov´s car as it rounded a bend near the Litvinov dacha on 31 December 1951, and he later died of his injuries. British television journalist Tim Tzouliadis stated; "The assassination of Litvinov marked an intensification of Stalin´s anti-Semitic campaign". According to Litvinov´s wife and daughter, however, Stalin was still on good terms with Litvinov at the time of his death. They said he had serious heart problems and was given the best treatment available during the final weeks of his life, and that he died from a heart attack on 31 December 1951. After Litvinov´s death, his widow Ivy remained in the Soviet Union until she returned to live in Britain in 1972.
ellauri278.html on line 326: Limp Bizkit is an American rap rock band from Jacksonville, Florida. Its lineup consists of lead vocalist Fred Durst, drummer John Otto, guitarist Wes Borland, turntablist DJ Lethal and bassist Sam Rivers. The band's music is marked by Durst's angry vocal delivery and Borland's sonic experimentation. Borland's elaborate visual appearance, which includes face and body paint, masks, and uniforms, also plays a large role in Limp Bizkit´s live shows. The band has been nominated for three Grammy Awards, sold 40 million records worldwide, and won several other awards. The band has released 26 singles, the most notable of which include "Nookie", "Re-Arranged", "Break Stuff", "Take a Look Around", "Rollin' (Air Raid Vehicle)." Formed in 1994, Limp Bizkit became popular playing in the Jacksonville underground music scene in the late 1990s. n October 28, 2021, Durst confirmed via Instagram that the band's sixth album – now titled Still Sucks – would be released on October 31, 2021. Durst's lyrics are often profane, scatological or angry. Much of Durst´s lyrical inspiration came from growing up and his personal life. I did it all for the nookie [slang for sexual intercourse].
ellauri278.html on line 344: Tapaukset käsitellään erityisjärjestyksessä, ja niihin sovelletaan korkeinta rangaistusta - välitöntä täytäntöönpanoa. Asiaa tulee käsitellä ilman pidätetyn kutsua paikalle ja ilman syytteen nostamista, päätöstä tutkinnan lopettamisesta ja syytteeseenpanoa. Tapausten käsittely ja päätöksen tekeminen on uskottu troikalle, johon kuuluvat toverit V. E. Merkulov, B. Kobulov ja Bashtakov.
ellauri278.html on line 350: Dmitri Tokarev, sittemmin Kalininin UNKVD:n päällikkö sai tietää "operaatiosta" maaliskuussa Moskovassa pidetyssä kokouksessa Kobulovin huulilta, minkä jälkeen sisäinen vankila valmistettiin: se vapautettiin väliaikaisesti muista vangeista, yksi selleistä päällystettiin huovalla, jotta laukauksia ei kuulunut. "Operaation" johtamiseen lähetettiin Moskovasta NKVD:n komentajaosaston päällikkö Blokhin, valtion turvallisuuden majuri Sinegubov ja saattajajoukkojen prikaatin komentaja Krivenkon esikuntapäällikkö. Blokhin toi mukanaan matkalaukullisen saksalaisia pistooleja "Walter" ja teloittajan nahkahaalarit, jotka vaikuttivat erityisesti Tokareviin: lippalakki, hanskat, joissa on leggingsit kyynärpään yläpuolella ja pitkä esiliina. Tokarev selittää "Waltersien" suosimisen sillä, että Neuvostoliiton "revolverit" ylikuumenivat toistuvasta ampumisesta.
ellauri278.html on line 354: Teloitettujen joukossa oli sekä uraupseereja (mukaan lukien kapteeni Jakub Wajda, joka teloitettiin Harkovissa, kuuluisan elokuvaohjaajan Andrzej Wajdan isä ), että sodan ajan upseereja - mobilisoituja lakimiehiä, toimittajia, insinöörejä, opettajia, lääkäreitä jne. mukaan lukien yliopiston professorit, joita oli Kozelskyn leirissä, tosin vain vaivaiset 20 henkilöä. Julkkiximpia teloitusten uhreja olivat Katynissa teloitettu naislentäjä Yanina Levandowska ja Kharkovissa teloitetut kenraalit Stanislav Haller, Budyonnyn voittaja vuonna 1920, Brestin jyräyxen puolustuspäällikkö Konstantin Plisovsky ja joku puolustuspäällikkö. On huomionarvoista, että Lvovin varuskunta antautui puna-armeijalle vapaan ulkomaanmatkan ehdolla.
ellauri278.html on line 496: Edelleen kehitelty PPD-40 (ППД-40, Pistolet-pulemjot Degtjareva, obrazets 1940 goda) oli ensimmäinen massatuotettu neuvostoliittolainen konepistooli, jota valmistettiin 86 986 kappaletta vuosina 1940–1941. Suurin rakenteellinen ero edeltävään malliin oli tukin muuttaminen kaksiosaiseksi, mikä mahdollisti "syöttökaulattoman" Suomi-konepistoolin rumpulippaan kopion käytön. Ase oli kuitenkin liian monimutkainen ja kallis todelliseen massatuotantoon, ja vuoden 1941 lopulla sen korvasi PPŠ-41, joka kuitenkin peri edeltäjältään rumpulippaansa.
ellauri278.html on line 520: 7,62 mm Pistolet-pulemjot Špagina obraztsa 1941 kirjoitetaan lyhennettynä PPŠ-41, mutta PPSh-41 on lännessä yleisempi lyhenne. Tämä neuvostoliittolainen konepistooli on yksi koko toisen maailmansodan eniten valmistettuja aseita, sillä näitä nopeasti ja suhteellisen edullisesti valmistettavia aseita tehtiin yli 6 miljoonaa kappaletta. Yleinen lempinimi tälle aseelle oli ”papasha”, eli iskä.
ellauri279.html on line 37: Еб твою мать
ellauri279.html on line 66: Nobel-palkinto Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinto
ellauri279.html on line 71: Löydät lisää ja parempiakin kirjailijoita kirjallisuuden teemasivulta. Hänet tunnetaan erityisesti Neuvostoliiton ojennustyöleirijärjestelmästä kertovista teoksistaan, joihin kuuluvat muiden muassa Ivan Denisovitšin päivä (1962), Syöpäosasto (1968), Ensimmäinen piiri ja Vankileirien saaristo (1973–1976). Hänen kuollessaan maailmassa oli myyty yli 30 miljoonaa hänen kirjoittamaansa kirjaa. Niitä oli käännetty noin 40 eri kielelle. Se on paljon nobelistixi. Jääprinsessan huudeilla. Solženitsynille myönnettiin Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinto vuonna 1970. Jonka se otti vastaan 1974 saatuaan lemput Neuvostolasta.
ellauri279.html on line 85: Hänelle myönnettiin vuoden 1970 Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinto "eettisestä voimasta, jolla hän on harjoittanut venäläisen kirjallisuuden välttämättömiä perinteitä", ja Gulagin saaristo oli erittäin vaikutusvaltainen teos, joka "merkitsi haastetta Neuvostoliiton valtiolle" ja myi kymmeniä miljoonia kopioita.
ellauri279.html on line 127: Pavel Trofimovitš Morozov (tunnetaan paremmin nimellä Pavlik Morozov, 14. marraskuuta 1918, Gerasimovka, Torinon piiri, Tobolskin maakunta, Venäjän osavaltio - 3. syyskuuta 1932, samassa paikassa, Tavdinskyn piiri, Uralin alue, RSFSR, Neuvostoliitto ) - Neuvostoliiton opiskelija joka sai ylimitoitettua Neuvostoliiton propagandamainetta pioneerisankarina, joka vastusti sosialistisen omaisuuden ryöstämistä ja kulakkeja konnamaisen isänsä Trofim Morozovin henkilössä ja maksoi siitä hengellään.
ellauri279.html on line 160: Pavel ja Fjodor Morozov haudattiin Gerasimovkan hautausmaalle. Hautamäelle asetettiin obeliski punaisella tähdellä ja sen viereen kaivettiin risti, jossa oli merkintä: ”3.9.1932 kaksi Morozov-veljestä, Pavel Trofimovitš, syntynyt vuonna 1918, ja Fjodor Trofimovitš kuolivat pahan miehen pahuxen terävästä veitsestä”.
ellauri279.html on line 208: Dmitri Mikhailovich Alperovitch (born 1980) is a Russian American think-tank founder, investor, philanthropist, podcast host and former computer security industry executive. He is the chairman of Silverado Policy Accelerator, a geopolitics think-tank in Washington, D.C. and a co-founder and former chief technology officer of CrowdStrike. Alperovitch is a naturalized U.S. citizen born in Russia who came to the United States in 1994 with his family. Following Russian invasion of Ukraine, Alperovitch became the host of Geopolitics Decanted podcast, where he discusses current geopolitical events with militarily experts, historians, economists and political scientists. He is one of the 100 leading global thinkers in foreign policy 2013. Alperovitch even got a nod from President Trump when the leader (erroneously) called out CrowdStrike as “owned by a very rich Ukrainian.” (It’s assumed he was talking about Alperovitch, who is a cofounder and was born in Moscow to Russian parents.)
ellauri279.html on line 281: 17. maaliskuuta 1953 Stalinin kuoleman jälkeen hänet pidätettiin ja pidettiin Lefortovon vankilassa. Kuulusteluissa hän kielsi syytökset vihollisen toiminnasta ja myönsi mielellään yksittäiset virheet. Hän ilmaisi haluavansa työskennellä missä tahansa virassa, jonne puolue lähettää hänet. Beria puhui kahdesti tyngän kanssa. Ensimmäistä kertaa hän rohkaisi Ryuminia, että hän voisi saada anteeksi, jos hän "paljastaa takapuolensa kokonaan". 28. maaliskuuta 1953 käytiin toinen keskustelu, joka päättyi 25 minuutin kuluttua lauseeseen: "Nähdään taas, paizi et sinä minua. Me eliminoimme sinut." Myöhemmin Ryumin alkoi väittää, että häntä vastaan nostivat kanteen "kansan viholliset Beria, Kobulov, Goglidze jaVlodzimirsky, joihin hän sekaantui."
ellauri279.html on line 315: obysk.jpg" />
ellauri279.html on line 404: 1970 - Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinto "moraalisesta voimasta, jolla hän seurasi venäläisen kirjallisuuden muuttumattomia perinteitä" (tarjoaja François Mauriac ; muiden lähteiden mukaan - Yakov Malkiel). Hän sai diplomin ja palkinnon rahallisen osan 10. joulukuuta 1974 Neuvostoliitosta karkotuksensa jälkeen.
ellauri279.html on line 447: Solzhenizyn teki näennäisen takinkäännön henkkoht enkan kääntämällä takkia nuipperin ja näipperin. Mielipiteeni olivat ennen radikaaleja nyt ne ovat konservatiiviset. Carlos Fuentes oli toinen takinkääntäjä. Isä Rafu oli sotinut Wilsonia vastaan Huertan jupakassa, ja sixi Carloskin rupesi eka kommunistixi. Mutta se kävi kouluja Yhdysvalloissa ja opiskeli isän käskystä lakia kynäilyn sijasta, ja sitä tietä Carloxesta tuli ensin hallituxen kätyri ja lopulta takinkääntäjä. Fuentes ja toinen meksikolainen kirjailija, Nobel-palkittu Octavio Paz ajautuivat 1990-luvulla riitoihin. He olivat ystävystyneet 1950 ja olivat tämän tehneet paljon yhteistyötä. Heidän välinsä alkoivat kuitenkin rakoilla 1980-luvulla, kun Fuentes kannatti sittemmin pahoixi takinkääntäjixi osoittautuneita Nicaraguan sandinisteja, jotka Paz tuomitsi. Paz oli oikeassa että Fuentesilta puuttui todellinen meksikolainen identiteetti. Sen se oli korvannut jenkki identiteetillä. Tämän se osoitti kynäilemällä useitakin amerikkalaishenkisiä NYT bestsellerejä.
ellauri279.html on line 452: The New York Times kuvaili muistokirjoituksessaan Fuentesia "yhdeksi espanjankielisen maailman ihailluimmista kirjailijoista" ja merkittävällä tavalla "Latin American Boomerixi," kun taas The Guardian kutsui häntä "Meksikon kuuluisimmaksi kirjailijaksi". Hänet mainittiin usein todennäköiseksi kirjallisuuden Nobelin ehdokkaaksi, vaikka hän ei koskaan voittanutkaan.
ellauri279.html on line 454: Vuonna 1938 Meksiko kansallisti ulkomaiset öljy-yhtiöt mikä johti kansalliseen meteliin Yhdysvalloissa; hän viittasi myöhemmin tapahtumaan hetkenä, jolloin hän alkoi ymmärtää itseään meksikolaiseksi. Vuonna 1940 Fuentesin perhe siirrettiin Santiagoon, Chileen. Siellä hän kiinnostui ensin sosialismista, josta tuli yksi hänen elinikäisistä hobbyistaan, anteexiannettavasta kiinnostuksesta Pablo Nerudan panoaiheista runoutta kohtaan. Hän asui Meksikossa ensimmäisen kerran 16-vuotiaana, kun hän meni opiskelemaan lakia National Autonomous University of Mexicossa (UNAM).
ellauri279.html on line 460: Fuentesin ensimmäinen romaani Missä ilma on kirkasta ( La región más transparente ) oli välitön menestys ilmestyessään vuonna 1958. Romaani rakentuu Federico Roblesin tarinan ympärille – joka on hylännyt vallankumoukselliset ihanteensa tullakseen voimakkaaxi rahoittajaxi.
ellauri281.html on line 54: Veikko Huovinen syntyi Simossa savolaisperäisessä perheessä, vuonna 1927. Isä Juho Aukusti Huovinen oli kotoisin Kuopiosta ja äiti Rosa Elina Hämäläinen Mikkelin maalaiskunnasta. Perheeseen kuuluivat myös vuonna 1923 syntynyt Hilkka, vuonna 1925 syntynyt ja pienenä kuollut Aimo sekä vuonna 1930 syntynyt Pentti. Veikon ollessa puolivuotias perhe muutti Sotkamoon, missä hän asui kuolemaansa saakka. Lapsena hänen kerrotaan olleen ilkikurinen ja hulluja tarinoita kertova poika. Huovisten kotona luettiin paljon, ja Veikkokin kahlasi lapsena Stalinin lailla läpi kaikki Tarzanit ja Robinson Crusoen.
ellauri281.html on line 84: Kaikki ympärillä puhuivat Stalinista tietysti aina "te" ja "toveri Stalin". Joskus vain henkilöt, jotka tulivat hänen luokseen "kokemattomuudesta", sanoivat "Joseph Vissarionovich". Vain kaksi ihmistä - Molotov ja Vorošilov olivat Stalinin kanssa "sinut". Kuulin myös Voroshilovin sanovan "Koba" Stalinille. "Koba" on Stalinin vallankumousta edeltävä maanalainen lempinimi.
ellauri281.html on line 164: British diplomat Sir Frank Roberts, who served as British chargé d'affaires in Moscow from February 1945 to October 1947, described him as follows:
ellauri281.html on line 166: He spoke good French, was quick, clever and efficient, and always knew his dossier well, but whereas I had a certain unwilling respect for Molotov, I had none at all for Vyshinsky. All Soviet officials at that time had no choice but to carry out Stalin's policies without asking too many questions, but Vyshinsky above all gave me the impression of a cringing toadie only too anxious to obey His Master's Voice even before it had expressed his wishes. ... I always had the feeling with Vyshinsky that his past as a Menshevik together with his Polish and bourgeois background made him particularly servile and obsequious in his dealings with Stalin and to a lesser extent with Molotov.
ellauri281.html on line 170: We must bear in mind that the growth of the power of the Soviet state will increase the resistance of the last remnants of the dying classes. It is precisely because they are dying, and living their last days that they will pass from one form of attack to another, to sharper forms of attack, appealing to the backward strata of the population, and mobilizing them against the Soviet power. There is no foul lie or slander that these 'have-beens' would not use against the Soviet power and around which they would not try to mobilize the backward elements. This may give ground for the revival of the activities of the defeated groups of the old counter-revolutionary parties: the Socialist-Revolutionaries, the Mensheviks (glup), the bourgeois Malo-Russian nationalists (double glup) in the centre and in the outlying regions; it may give grounds also for the revival of the activities of the fragments of counter-revolutionary opposition elements from among the Trotskyites and the Right deviationists. Of course, there is nothing terrible in this. But we must bear all this in mind if we want to put an end to these elements quickly and without great loss."
ellauri281.html on line 182: - Stalin oli ehdolla Nobelin rauhanpalkinnon saajaksi. Vuonna 1945 ja 1948 Stalin oli ehdolla Nobelin rauhanpalkinnon saajaksi, mutta hän ei koskaan saanut palkintoa. Kummallakin kerralla hän sai ehdokkuuden toimistaan natsi-Saksan kaatamiseksi. Nimitykset tapahtuivat aikana, jolloin Stalinin sotarikosten laajuutta ei ollut vielä tajuttu.
ellauri281.html on line 191: A distant relative of Aleksandr Pushkin, Georgy Chicherin was born into an old noble family. He was born on the estate of his uncle, Boris Chicherin, in Karaul, Tambov. His father, Vasily N. Chicherin, was a diplomat employed by the Foreign Office of the Russian Empire.
ellauri281.html on line 199: Chicherin was an eccentric, with obsessive work habits. Alexander Barmine, who worked in the People´s Commissariat for Foreign Affairs, noted that "Chicherin was a workaholic with peculiar habits. His workroom was completely buried in books, newspaper and documents. He used to patter into our room in his shirt sleeves, wearing a large silk handkerchief round his neck and slippers adorned with metal buckles ... which, for comfort´s sake, he never troubled to fasten, making a clicking noise on the floor." In 1930 Chicherin was formally replaced by his deputy, Maxim Litvinov. A continuing terminal illness burdened his last years, which forced him away from his circle of friends and active work and led to an early death.
ellauri281.html on line 207: In January 1908, French police arrested Litvinov under the name Meer Wallach while carrying twelve 500-ruble banknotes that had been stolen in a bank robbery in Tiflis the year before. The Russian government demanded his extradition but the French Minister for Justice Aristide Briand ruled Litvinov´s crime was political and ordered him to be deported. He went to Belfast, Ireland, where he joined his sister Rifka and her family. There, he taught foreign languages in the Jewish Jaffe Public Elementary School until 1910.
ellauri281.html on line 226: An emergency meeting of the main European powers – not including Czechoslovakia, although their representatives were present in the town, or the Soviet Union, an ally to both France and Czechoslovakia – took place in Munich, Germany, on 29–30 September 1938. An agreement was quickly reached on Hitler´s terms, and signed by the leaders of Germany, France, Britain, and Italy. The Czechoslovak mountainous borderland that the powers offered to appease Germany had not only marked the natural border between the Czech state and the Germanic states since the early Middle Ages, but it also presented a major natural obstacle to any possible German attack. Having been strengthened by significant border fortifications, the Sudetenland was of absolute strategic importance to Czechoslovakia.
ellauri281.html on line 228: On 30 September, Czechoslovakia yielded to the combination of military pressure by Germany, Poland, and Hungary, and diplomatic pressure by the United Kingdom and France, and agreed to give up territory to Germany on Munich terms. Then, on 1 October, Czechoslovakia also accepted Polish territorial demands. Much of Europe celebrated the Munich Agreement, as they considered it a way to prevent a major war on the continent. Adolf Hitler announced that it was his last territorial claim in Northern Europe. Today, the Munich Agreement is widely regarded as a failed act of appeasement, and the term has become a byword for the futility of appeasing expansionist totalitarian states.
ellauri281.html on line 239: The imperialists in these two countries had done everything they could to goad Hitler’s Germany against the Soviet Union by secret deals and provocative moves. In the circumstances the Soviet Union could either accept German proposals for a non-aggression treaty and thus secure a period of peace in which to redouble preparations to repulse the aggressor; or turn down Germany’s proposals and let the warmongers in the Western camp push the Soviet Union into an armed conflict with Germany in unfavourable circumstances and in a setting of complete isolation. In this situation the Soviet Government was compelled to make the difficult choice and conclude a non-aggression treaty with Germany. I, too, would probably have concluded a pact with Germany although a bit differently.
ellauri281.html on line 241: The replacement of Litvinov with Molotov significantly increased Stalin´s freedom to manoeuver in foreign policy. The dismissal of Litvinov, whose Jewish background was viewed disfavorably by Nazi Germany, removed an obstacle to negotiations with Germany. Stalin immediately directed Molotov to "purge the ministry of Jews". Recalling Stalin´s order, Molotov commented: "Thank God for these words! Jews formed an absolute majority in the leadership and among the ambassadors. It wasn´t good."
ellauri281.html on line 261: Maxim Litvinov died on on 31 December 1951. After his death, rumours he was murdered on Stalin´s instructions to the Ministry of Internal Affairs circulated. According to Anastas Mikoyan, alorry deliberately collided with Litvinov´s car as it rounded a bend near the Litvinov dacha on 31 December 1951, and he later died of his injuries. British television journalist Tim Tzouliadis stated; "The assassination of Litvinov marked an intensification of Stalin´s anti-Semitic campaign". According to Litvinov´s wife and daughter, however, Stalin was still on good terms with Litvinov at the time of his death. They said he had serious heart problems and was given the best treatment available during the final weeks of his life, and that he died from a heart attack on 31 December 1951. After Litvinov´s death, his widow Ivy remained in the Soviet Union until she returned to live in Britain in 1972.
ellauri281.html on line 325: Limp Bizkit is an American rap rock band from Jacksonville, Florida. Its lineup consists of lead vocalist Fred Durst, drummer John Otto, guitarist Wes Borland, turntablist DJ Lethal and bassist Sam Rivers. The band's music is marked by Durst's angry vocal delivery and Borland's sonic experimentation. Borland's elaborate visual appearance, which includes face and body paint, masks, and uniforms, also plays a large role in Limp Bizkit´s live shows. The band has been nominated for three Grammy Awards, sold 40 million records worldwide, and won several other awards. The band has released 26 singles, the most notable of which include "Nookie", "Re-Arranged", "Break Stuff", "Take a Look Around", "Rollin' (Air Raid Vehicle)." Formed in 1994, Limp Bizkit became popular playing in the Jacksonville underground music scene in the late 1990s. n October 28, 2021, Durst confirmed via Instagram that the band's sixth album – now titled Still Sucks – would be released on October 31, 2021. Durst's lyrics are often profane, scatological or angry. Much of Durst´s lyrical inspiration came from growing up and his personal life. I did it all for the nookie [slang for sexual intercourse].
ellauri281.html on line 343: Tapaukset käsitellään erityisjärjestyksessä, ja niihin sovelletaan korkeinta rangaistusta - välitöntä täytäntöönpanoa. Asiaa tulee käsitellä ilman pidätetyn kutsua paikalle ja ilman syytteen nostamista, päätöstä tutkinnan lopettamisesta ja syytteeseenpanoa. Tapausten käsittely ja päätöksen tekeminen on uskottu troikalle, johon kuuluvat toverit V. E. Merkulov, B. Kobulov ja Bashtakov.
ellauri281.html on line 349: Dmitri Tokarev, sittemmin Kalininin UNKVD:n päällikkö sai tietää "operaatiosta" maaliskuussa Moskovassa pidetyssä kokouksessa Kobulovin huulilta, minkä jälkeen sisäinen vankila valmistettiin: se vapautettiin väliaikaisesti muista vangeista, yksi selleistä päällystettiin huovalla, jotta laukauksia ei kuulunut. "Operaation" johtamiseen lähetettiin Moskovasta NKVD:n komentajaosaston päällikkö Blokhin, valtion turvallisuuden majuri Sinegubov ja saattajajoukkojen prikaatin komentaja Krivenkon esikuntapäällikkö. Blokhin toi mukanaan matkalaukullisen saksalaisia pistooleja "Walter" ja teloittajan nahkahaalarit, jotka vaikuttivat erityisesti Tokareviin: lippalakki, hanskat, joissa on leggingsit kyynärpään yläpuolella ja pitkä esiliina. Tokarev selittää "Waltersien" suosimisen sillä, että Neuvostoliiton "revolverit" ylikuumenivat toistuvasta ampumisesta.
ellauri281.html on line 353: Teloitettujen joukossa oli sekä uraupseereja (mukaan lukien kapteeni Jakub Wajda, joka teloitettiin Harkovissa, kuuluisan elokuvaohjaajan Andrzej Wajdan isä ), että sodan ajan upseereja - mobilisoituja lakimiehiä, toimittajia, insinöörejä, opettajia, lääkäreitä jne. mukaan lukien yliopiston professorit, joita oli Kozelskyn leirissä, tosin vain vaivaiset 20 henkilöä. Julkkiximpia teloitusten uhreja olivat Katynissa teloitettu naislentäjä Yanina Levandowska ja Kharkovissa teloitetut kenraalit Stanislav Haller, Budyonnyn voittaja vuonna 1920, Brestin jyräyxen puolustuspäällikkö Konstantin Plisovsky ja joku puolustuspäällikkö. On huomionarvoista, että Lvovin varuskunta antautui puna-armeijalle vapaan ulkomaanmatkan ehdolla.
ellauri281.html on line 495: Edelleen kehitelty PPD-40 (ППД-40, Pistolet-pulemjot Degtjareva, obrazets 1940 goda) oli ensimmäinen massatuotettu neuvostoliittolainen konepistooli, jota valmistettiin 86 986 kappaletta vuosina 1940–1941. Suurin rakenteellinen ero edeltävään malliin oli tukin muuttaminen kaksiosaiseksi, mikä mahdollisti "syöttökaulattoman" Suomi-konepistoolin rumpulippaan kopion käytön. Ase oli kuitenkin liian monimutkainen ja kallis todelliseen massatuotantoon, ja vuoden 1941 lopulla sen korvasi PPŠ-41, joka kuitenkin peri edeltäjältään rumpulippaansa.
ellauri281.html on line 519: 7,62 mm Pistolet-pulemjot Špagina obraztsa 1941 kirjoitetaan lyhennettynä PPŠ-41, mutta PPSh-41 on lännessä yleisempi lyhenne. Tämä neuvostoliittolainen konepistooli on yksi koko toisen maailmansodan eniten valmistettuja aseita, sillä näitä nopeasti ja suhteellisen edullisesti valmistettavia aseita tehtiin yli 6 miljoonaa kappaletta. Yleinen lempinimi tälle aseelle oli ”papasha”, eli iskä.
ellauri282.html on line 56: Nobiscum pro cum nobis oli eufemismi. Cum nobis nopeasti sanottuna kuulosti samalta kuin "vitulla kahdesti". Hoc vinces voisi olla myös "tämän voitat".
ellauri282.html on line 62: 2020-luvun muskelimasa Harjunpäätä ei ruumiit paljn paina, onhan noita tullut nähtyä muissa suorasoittosarjoissa. Se varmaan unohtaisi ellei sitä pantaisi joka jaxossa muistuttamaan kazojia ja vähän izeäänkin, että se on masis. Rahat ei riitä kalliin rivitalonpätkän lyhennyxiin, mutta rumaa purjevenettä ei kyllä myydä, ennen sitten vaikka kutistetaan kakarat ja pantataan koko Niskavuori. Hoblassa sinkku Abszess ei tahdo lapsia, se on tyytyväinen olemaan vain täti jolla on tukku nettiystäviä (vrt Kristina-täti). Romanttinen rakkaus ei säily hengissä lapsiperheessä, se on todennut. No ei vittu tietysti, romantiikka on sitä ettei ole varma saako pillua.
ellauri282.html on line 79: [3.4. klo 12.32] Oma Profiili: No niinpä nimenomaan, Jeesus oli globalisaation apostoli.
ellauri282.html on line 101: [3.4. klo 19.14] Oma Profiili: The famous Allan Ramsay portrait of David Hume, hanging in the University of Edinburgh, depicts him wearing a remarkable hat: a unique salmon-coloured turban. I was able to see the original on the occasion of receiving an honorary degree from Edinburgh in 2007, and ever since then I have desired to obtain a replica of that curious hat for myself (to wear on special occasions, such as those requiring academic regalia).
ellauri282.html on line 165: Im Februar 2019 machte seine ex-Heiligkeit die „Lockerung der Moral“ im Zuge der 68er-Bewegung für den sexuellen Missbrauch in der katholischen Kirche mitverantwortlich. Er betrachtete die Leugnung der Objektivität durch den Relativismus und insbesondere die Leugnung moralischer Wahrheiten als das zentrale Problem des 21. Jahrhunderts. Wegen seines Umgangs mit hübschen Fällen sexuellen Missbrauchs in der römisch-katholischen Kirche war Benedikt XVI. umstritten, obwohl er strenge Regeln für den sexuellen Umgang mit den Tätern einführte. Baijerilainen emeritusprofessori Ratzinger lähti eläkkeelle paavinta 85-vuotiaana 2012. Emerituspäivät päättyivät 93-vuotiaana 2020 kasvoruusuisena.
ellauri282.html on line 356: Ollessaan toipilaana uskonnollisessa hospitaalissa, Loyola syventyi tavanomaisen ritariromanssien puutteessa uskonnolliseen kirjallisuuteen. Loyola luki muun muassa Ludolph Saksikäden (noin 1295 – 1378) kristillistä mietiskelyä käsittelevää teosta Vita Christi (suom. "Kristuksen elämä") ja Jacobus Voraginelaisen (noin 1230–1298) tylsimysten elämää käsittelevään teokseen Legenda jo eläessään. Ludolph ehdottaa, että lukija asettuisi henkisesti evankeliumitarinaan, visualisoimaan pinnasängyn sikiämishetkellä jne. Tämäntyyppinen meditaatio, joka tunnetaan nimellä Simple Contemplation, oli menetelmän perusta. jonka Ignatius esitti henkisissä vällyharjoituksissaan.
ellauri282.html on line 374: »Orémus. Deus, qui ad maiórem tui nóminis glóriam propagándam, novo per beátum Ignátium subsídio militántem Ecclésiam roborásti: concéde; ut, eius auxílio et imitatióne certántes in terris, coronári cum ipso mereámur in cœlis.»
ellauri282.html on line 414: Hän matkusti paljon tapaillessaan heitä ja osallistuessaan kansainvälisiin uskontokonferensseihin. Lisäksi hän kirjoitti kirjoja zen-buddhalaisuudesta, konfutselaisuudesta ja taolaisuudesta ja miten kristinuskon tulisi liittyä niihin. Tämä oli erittäin epätavallista tuolloin Yhdysvalloissa, erityisesti uskonnollisissa järjestöissä. (Tuskin paavi Ratzingerkaan oli järin innostunut tästä. He probably shat in his hat.)
ellauri282.html on line 422: Tammikuussa 1935 Merton, 20, ilmoittautui toisena opiskelijana Columbia Universityyn Manhattanilla. Siellä hän solmi läheiset ja pitkäaikaiset ystävyyssuhteet Ad Reinhardtin kanssa, joka tuli tunnetuksi proto- minimalistisena maalarina, runoilija Robert Laxiin, kommentaattori Ralph de Toledanoon, ja John Slateen kanssa, joka perusti kansainvälisen asianajotoimiston. Skadden Arps Slate Meagher & Flomista tuli hänen oikeudellinen neuvonantajansa ja Robert Girouxista, Farrar, Straus and Girouxin perustajasta tuli hänen kustantajansa. Talk about creamy arse frat boys!
ellauri282.html on line 436: 19. maaliskuuta 1944 Merton teki väliaikaisen lupauksensa ja hänelle annettiin valkoinen hattu, musta olkapää ja nahkavyö. Marraskuussa 1944 James Laughlin julkaisi käsikirjoituksen, jonka Merton oli antanut ystävälle Robert Laxille edellisenä vuonna osoitteessa New Directions: runokirja nimeltä Thirty Poems. Mertonilla oli ristiriitaisia tunteita tämän teoksen julkaisemisesta, mutta Dunne pysyi päättäväisenä, koska Merton jatkoi kirjoittamistaan. Vuonna 1946 New Directions julkaisi toisen Mertonin runokokoelman, A Man in the Divided Sea, joka yhdistettynä kolmeenkymmeneen runoon, herätti hänelle tunnustusta. Samana vuonna Harcourt Brace & Company hyväksyi Mertonin käsikirjoituksen The Seven Storey Mountainiin julkaistavaksi. Seitsemänkerroksinen vuori, Mertonin omaelämäkerta, kirjoitettiin kahden tunnin välein luostarin scriptoriumissa henkilökohtaisena projektina.
ellauri282.html on line 490: Merton tuli omaksi itsekseen ihmisenä ja kirjallisena lahjakkuutena opiskellessaan tunnetun professorin Mark Van Dorenin kanssa ja solmiessaan elimellisiä ystävyyssuhteita myös toimittaja Ed Ricen ja runoilija Robert Laxin kanssa.
ellauri282.html on line 499: Merton pohtii kirjassa varhaista elämäänsä ja puutteellista ymmärrystään ja halua löytää usko Jumalaan, mikä johti hänen kääntymiseensä roomalaiskatolisuuteen 1938 hänen ollessaan 23-vuotias. Ester Toivosesta tuli samaan aikaan Hastingsissa Miss Eurooppa. 2v mietintätauon jälkeen Merton luopui lupaavasta kirjallisesta urasta Columbia Jesterissä ja jätti lupaavan työnsä englannin opettajana St. Bonaventure's Collegessa Oleanissa, New Yorkissa. Sitten hän muutti Kentuckyn maaseudulle 1941 ja astui Getsemanin Neitsyt Marian luostariin. Samana vuonna Hitler mokasi avaamalla itärintaman suomalaisten tuella. Ei olis kannattanut. Kuoli 54-vuotiaana hämärissä olosuhteissa Bangcockissa1968, Merton siis. 27v irstailua + 27v luostarointia. Ei täysin transparenttia. Samana vuonna ammuttiin Robert Kennedy. Mä olin silloin Kivisaaren luostarissa irstailemassa. Hitler kuoli 66v hämärissä olosuhteissa Berliinissä 1945. For me to be a Saint is to be myself.
ellauri282.html on line 524: Whích What Hanhi (/ˈtɪk ˈnjʌt ˈhʌn/ TIK NYUHT HUHN; Vietnamese: [tʰǐk̟ ɲə̌t hâjŋ̟ˀ] (listen); born Nguyễn Xuân Bảo; 11 October 1926 – 22 January 2022) oli vietnamilainen Thiền-buddhalainen munkki, rauhanaktivisti, tuottelias kirjailija, runoilija ja opettaja, joka perusti Luumu Kylä Perinteen, joka on historiallisesti tunnustettu tärkeimmäksi innoituxexi sitoutuneelle buddhalaisuudelle. "Mindfulnessin isänä" tunnettu Nhất Hạnh oli merkittävä vaikutus buddhalaisuuden länsimaisiin käytäntöihin. Mindfulness (skr. smrti, pal. sati) tarkoittaa muistoa. Sitä mikä palaa mieleen. Lännessä hän on ikoni. En voi ajatella länsimaista buddhalaista, joka ei tiedä Thich Nhất Hạnhista. Selvä länkkäreiden agentti. Tätähän muuten tutki Antti Niemen tytär Maisu, ei saanut juuri mitään mitattavaa tulosta, mutta perusti siitä huolimatta mindfulness-toimiston Tukholman vanhaan kaupunkiin, joka varmaan vetää väkeä kuin häkä. 2019 raportoitiin, että Nhất Hạnhin kannattamasta mindfulnessista oli tullut teoreettinen perusta 1.1 miljardin dollarin teollisuudelle Yhdysvalloissa. Eräässä tutkimuksessa todettiin, että 35% työnantajista käytti mindfulnessia työpaikan käytännöissä. Varsinaista ison rahan vedätystä siis!
ellauri282.html on line 542: Nobel-palkittu Martin Luther King Jr. kimitti Nhất Hạnhea Nobelin rauhanpalkinnon saajaksi vuonna 1967. Palkintoa ei sinä vuonna myönnetty. Vietnamin sota oli hyvässä vauhdissa. Se päättyi vasta 1975 Amerikan rökäletappioon.
ellauri282.html on line 561: Siis tää polakki on aivan järjetöntä sota-ajan sadistista soopaa. Yläluokan pellet jossain polakkien kartanolla kyylää nuorten pyllynreikiä. Kaikki on täys mobutu seko sekoja. Typerää terroristitiimitematiikkaa rote Rosen -nuljastelun välissä. Setämiehet ällöttävät toisiaan ilman jotain yhdistävää tiimiä. Siemian on itäpolakki, joku kasakki, siis ukrainalainen mistä lie Donbassista, länsipolskit ällöävät sitä suunnitellessaan sen tappoa. Se on melkisten kuin ryssä. Pierino Ronald "Perry" Como ulisi serenadissa jotta kunpa Caterina ei antaisi vekkiä kellekään muulle miehelle kuin hänelle. Voisi ajatella että mixi se on niin tärkeää Perrylle (ja Waclaville), mutta tietysti se on, se on ihan pääasia niiden izekkäille geeneille. Koitapa kexiä jotain muuta kynäilyn aihetta kuin E!F!K! ja näet miten mahdotonta se on. Juonipaljastuxet löytyy nyt albumista 257.
ellauri282.html on line 576: obooks.com/wp-content/uploads/2016/01/0135.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri282.html on line 599: Vuonna 1930 Robert Bridgesin kuoltua tarvittiin uusi runoilijavoittaja. Pääministeri Ramsay MacDonaldin suosituksesta kuningas George V nimitti Masefieldin, joka pysyi virassa kuolemaansa saakka vuonna 1967. Ainoa henkilö, joka piti virkaa pidempään, oli Alfred, Lord Tennyson. 2 riittävän isänmaallista myötäsukailijaa ja kylmäpäistä sotapropagandistia.
ellauri282.html on line 601: Robert Seymour Bridges OM (23. lokakuuta 1844 – 21. huhtikuuta 1930) oli englantilainen runoilija, joka oli runoilijavoittaja vuosina 1913–1930. Koulutukseltaan lääkäri, hän saavutti kirjallisuuden mainetta vasta myöhään elämässään. Hänen runoissaan näkyy syvä kristillinen usko, ja hän on monien tunnettujen hymnien kirjoittaja. Bridgesin ponnisteluilla Gerard Manley Hopkins saavutti kuolemanjälkeisen maineen.
ellauri283.html on line 67: Ekman promoverades till filosofie hedersdoktor vid Umeå universitet 1998. Den 6 oktober 2007 blev hon skoglig hedersdoktor vid Sveriges lantbruksuniversitet. Ekman promoverades med motiveringen en person som med fantastiska kunskaper om skog och nyttjandet av skog gett oss betraktelser som saknar motstycke. Det var första gången i modern tid som en fakultet för skogsvetenskap hedrat en författare. Hennes bok Hunden har översatts till och givits ut på älvdalska. Älvdals hundskola överväger att nämna Kerstin till hedersveterinär.
ellauri283.html on line 108: Äußerlich scheint die Familie noch völlig intakt zu sein, aber seit sein älterer Bruder vor einigen Jahren verschwunden ist, sind die Eltern des zwölfjährigen Oliver (Nathan Gamble) völlig auf den verlorenen Sohn fixiert. Seine Mutter Joan (Dendrie Taylor) verfiel in Depressionen und sein Vater Gus (Corbin Bernsen) war nur noch am arbeiten. Jetzt zweifelt Oliver an dem Sinn seines Lebens. Die Frage, ob der Glaube an Gott oder der Glaube an die Wissenschaft richtig ist, oder beide, oder keiner von den beiden, beschäftigt ihn. Da seine Eltern ihm auf seine Fragen keine Antwort geben können, sucht er Rat bei seinem Biologie-Lehrer, in Fachbüchern und in der Kirche. Doch niemand scheint ihm seine ersehnte Erkenntnis liefern zu können. Als Oliver schon die Hoffnung aufgeben will, naht eine unerwartete Erlösung. Als auch ihr zweiter Sohn verschwindet, verstehen seine Eltern endlich, was ihn beschäftigt: ein schwarzer Engel, der auf einer Rakete reitet.
ellauri283.html on line 116: And what is to be made of Corbin Bernsen? What is his place in Christian film? Is he trolling? Is he a great mind misunderstood? Whether it’s abstract musings like Beyond the Heavens or half-hearted satire like Christian Mingle or In-Lawfully Yours, Bernsen’s motivations for making Christian films are very unclear. It’s possible that he’s smarter than us all and doesn’t know how to show it. But it’s also possible that he’s just trying to make a quick buck off of Christian audiences. Reality is probably somewhere in between. Regardless, Beyond the Heavens really needed to be rethought before anyone spent money on it, because it falls flat and is unable to properly convey whatever message it is trying to present.
ellauri283.html on line 118: Bernsen has one of the largest snow globe collections in the world, with 9,000 globes, give or take a few.
ellauri283.html on line 149: Osa yhdeksän: Mikä on Nobel-palkinto?
ellauri283.html on line 197: Nietzsche toteaa, että yhteiskunnan yleisenä periaatteena olla loukkaamatta, hyödyntämättä tai olla väkivaltaisia muita kohtaan on "tahto elämän kieltämiseen, hajoamisen ja rappeutumisen periaate". Hän jatkaa väittäen, että elämä on "pohjimmiltaan ottamista, vahingoittamista, outojen ja heikkojen valloittamista". Nietzsche pitää aivan oikein Englantia karkeana, synkänä, julmempana kuin saksalaiset ja julistaa, että "he eivät ole filosofista rotua". Hän erottaa Baconin, Hobbesin, Humen ja Locken edustavan "filosofi-käsitteen alenemista ja devalvaatiota enemmän kuin vuosisadalla". Nietzsche käsittelee myös käännösongelmia ja saksan kielen lyijyä.
ellauri283.html on line 230: Al-Bashirin hallitus tehosti värväystä auttaakseen mobilisoimaan kapinallisia vastaan käytävään sotaan. Tähän sisältyi rikollisten, vankien ja vankien rekisteröiminen sekä uusien kyläpäälliköiden nimittäminen. Silkkaa putinismia! Human Rights Watchin mukaan Rapid Support Forces -joukot tekivät sotarikoksia Darfurissa vuosina 2014 ja 2015, jolloin siviilejä siirrettiin, raiskattiin, ryöstettiin ja tapettiin. Juu ihan Ukrainan demilitarisaatiolta kuulostaa. Al-Bashir oli siis oikea rupikonna! Ruoskaa ja järveen!
ellauri283.html on line 271: Niilin alueella Pohjois-Sudanissa sijainneen Kushin kuningaskunnan varhainen historia kietoutuu muinaisen Egyptin historiaan, jonka kanssa se oli poliittisesti liittoutunut useiden hallituskausien aikana. Egyptin läheisyyden ansiosta Sudan osallistui Lähi-idän laajempaan historiaan, kun Egyptin tärkeä 25. dynastia ja kolme Nubian kuningaskuntaa, Nobatia, Makuria ja Alodia, kristillistyivät kuudennella vuosisadalla. Kristillistymisen seurauksena vanha nubian kieli on vanhin tallennettu Niilosaharan kieli (varhaisimmat tiedot 800-luvulta koptilaisiiin aakkosiin mukautettuna). Neekeri oli egyptixi Ne-hash-Kush ("ne haisevat kuselta"), väitti Wettenhovi-Aspa, osoittaaxeen että egyptiläiset puhuivat keskenänsä suomea.
ellauri283.html on line 293: Egyptin seuraava dynastia ei onnistunut saamaan Kushin täyttä hallintaansa. Noin 590 eKr. Egyptin armeija kuitenkin potkaisi napakasti Napataa, mikä pakotti kushilaisen hovin siirtymään turvallisempaan paikkaan etelämpänä Meroëssa, lähellä kuudetta kaihia. Useiden vuosisatojen ajan sen jälkeen Meroliittinen valtakunta kehittyi riippumattomasti egyptiläisestä vaikutuksesta ja herruudesta, joka sillä aikaa siirtyi peräkkäin Iranin, Kreikan ja lopulta Rooman vallan alle. Vallansa huipulla toisella ja kolmannella vuosisadalla eKr. Meroë ulottui alueen yli kolmannesta kaihista pohjoisessa Zhobaan, lähellä nykyistä Khartumia etelässä. Egyptiläisvaikutteinen faaraoninen perinne säilyi Meroën hallitsijoiden joukossa, jotka pystyttivät stela-kuvia tallentaakseen hallituskautensa saavutuksia ja pystyttivät nubialaisia pyramideja haudoillensa. Voisi sanoa että ne olivat ebyktiläisempiä kuin eebyktiläiset ize. Nämä esineet ja Meroën palatsien, temppelien ja kylpylöiden rauniot todistavat keskitetystä epädemokraattisesta poliittisesta järjestelmästä, joka käytti käsityöläisten taitoja ja johti suuren työvoiman työtä. Hyvin hoidettu kastelujärjestelmä mahdollisti alueen suuremman asukastiheyden kuin myöhempinä ajanjaksoina oli mahdollista. Ensimmäisellä vuosisadalla eaa. egyptiläisten hieroglyfien käyttö teki tietä meroitilaiselle aakkostolle, joka oli mukautettu nubian kielelle mitä alueen mustat miehet puhuvat.
ellauri283.html on line 300: Toisella vuosisadalla jKr muuan Nobatia miehitti Niilin länsirannan Pohjois-Kushissa. Heidän uskotaan olleen yksi useista hyvin aseistetuista hevos- ja kamelien kantamien soturien joukoista, jotka myivät taitonsa Meroëlle suojelukseksi; lopulta he menivät naimisiin ja vakiintuivat Meroitic kansan keskuudessa sotilaallisena aristokratiana. Lähes viidennelle vuosisadalle saakka Rooma tuki Nobodyja ja käytti Meroëa puskurina Egyptin ja Blemmyjen välillä.
ellauri283.html on line 302: Nobodya / n oʊ ˈ b eɪ ʃ ə / tai nobadia ( / n oʊ ˈ b eɪ d i ə / ; kreikka : νοβαδία, nobadia ; vanha nubialainen : ⲙⲓⲅⲛ̅ migin tai ⲙⲓⲅⲓⲧⲛ︦ ⲅⲩⲗ, migitin goul -rivi "Nobadian maasta" ) oli myöhäinen antiikin valtakunta Ala-Noobiassa. Yhdessä kahden muun Nubian valtakunnan, Makuria ja Alodia, se seurasi Kushin valtakuntaa. Sen jälkeen, kun Nobadia perustettiin noin vuonna 400, se laajeni vähitellen kukistamalla Blemmyt pohjoisessa ja sisällyttämällä alueen toisen ja kolmannen Niilin kaihien väliseen etelään. Vuonna 543 se kääntyi koptikristinuskoon. Sen jälkeen Makuria annexoi sen tuntemattomissa olosuhteissa 700-luvulla.
ellauri283.html on line 311: Viidennen vuosisadan vaihteessa Blemmyt perustivat lyhytaikaisen valtion Ylä-Egyptiin ja Ala-Nubiaan, luultavasti Talmin ( Kalabshan ) ympärille, mutta ennen vuotta 450 nobatialaiset ajoivat heidät pois Niilin laaksosta. Viimeksi mainitut perustivat lopulta valtakunnan itsenäisesti, Nobatian. 6. vuosisadalla oli yhteensä kolme Nubian valtakuntaa: Nobatia pohjoisessa, jonka pääkaupunki oli Pakurikääpä (Faras); Keski-valtakunta, Makuria, jonka keskusta on Tungulissa (Vanha Dongola), noin 13 kilometriä (8 mailia) etelään nykyisestä Dongolasta; ja Alodia, vanhan kushilaisen valtakunnan sydämessä, jonka pääkaupunki oli Zhoba (nykyisen Khartumin esikaupunki). Vielä kuudennella vuosisadalla he kääntyivät kristinuskoon. Seitsemännellä vuosisadalla, luultavasti jossain vaiheessa vuosien 628 ja 642 välillä, Nobodia liitettiin Makulaan.
ellauri283.html on line 315: 800-luvun puolivälistä 1100-luvun puoliväliin Christian Nubia koki kultakautensa, jolloin sen poliittinen valta ja kulttuurinen kehitys saavuttivat huippunsa. Vuonna 747 Makulatuuri tunkeutui Egyptiin, joka kuului tuolloin parahultaisesti taantuville Umayyadeille ja teki niin jälleen 960 - luvun alussa, kun se työntyi pohjoiseen Akhmimiin asti. Makurialla säilyi läheiset dynastiset siteet Alodiaan, mikä ehkä johti kahden valtakunnan väliaikaiseen yhdistämiseen yhdeksi valtioksi. Keskiaikaisten nubialaisten kulttuuria on kuvattu " afrobysanttilaiseksi ", ja "afrikkalaisen" komponentin merkitys kasvaa ajan myötä. Myös arabien vaikutuksen lisääntyminen on havaittu. Valtion organisaatio oli erittäin keskitetty perustuen 6. ja 7. vuosisadan bysanttilaiseen byrokratiaan. Taide kukoisti keramiikkamaalausten ja erityisesti seinämaalausten muodossa. Noobit kehittivät kielelleen oman aakkoston, Old Noobin, joka perustui koptilaisiin aakkosiin, mutta käytti myös kreikkaa, koptia ja arabiaa. Naiset nauttivat ihanasti korkeasta yhteiskunnallisesta asemasta: heillä oli mahdollisuus saada koulutusta, he voivat omistaa, ostaa ja myydä maata ja käyttivät usein omaisuuttaan kirkkojen ja kirkkomaalausten lahjoittamiseen. Jopa kuninkaallinen perintö oli matrilineaarista, jopa kuninkaan sisaren poika oli laillinen perillinen!
ellauri283.html on line 335: Lord Kitchenerin johtama englantilais-egyptiläinen joukko lähetettiin vuonna 1898 Sudaniin. Sama Kitchener epäilemättä joka seikkaili kenraali Bobsin kanssa maalla, merellä ja ilmassa. Sudan julistettiin osakehuoneistoksi vuonna 1899 Britannian ja Egyptin hallinnon alaisuudessa. Esimerkiksi Sudanin kenraalikuvernööri nimitettiin "Khedivaatin asetuksella" eikä pelkästään Ison-Britannian kruunun toimesta, mutta säilyttäen yhteisen hallinnon vaikutelman Brittiläinen imperiumi muotoili politiikkaa ja toimitti suurimman osan johtajista hengiltä.
ellauri283.html on line 379: Maaliskuussa 1985 ilmoitus perustarpeiden hintojen noususta IMF:n "pyynnöstä", jonka kanssa hallitus neuvotteli, laukaisi ensimmäiset mielenosoitukset. Huhtikuun 2. päivänä kahdeksan ammattiliittoa vaati mobilisaatiota ja "yleistä poliittista lakkoa nykyisen hallinnon lakkauttamiseen asti". 3. päivänä massiiviset mielenosoitukset ravistelivat Khartumia, mutta myös maan tärkeimpiä kaupunkeja; lakko halvaansi instituutiot ja talouden. Huhtikuun 6. päivänä 1985 joukko sotilaita, joita johti kenraaliluutnantti Abd ar Rahman Siwar adh Dhahab, kaatoi Nimeirin, joka pakeni Egyptiin. Kolme päivää myöhemmin Dhahab valtuutti perustamaan 15 miehen siirtymäkauden sotilasneuvoston (YMCA) hallitsemaan Sudania.
ellauri283.html on line 393: Tšadin ja Sudanin konflikti alkoi virallisesti 23. joulukuuta 2004, kun Tšadin hallitus julisti sotatilan Sudanin kanssa ja kehotti Tšadin kansalaisia mobilisoimaan Demokratian ja Vapauden puolesta (RDL) militantteja (Tšadin kapinallisia, joita tukivat Sudanin hallitus) ja sudanilaiset miliisit, jotka hyökkäsivät kyliin ja kaupunkeihin Itä-Tšadissa, varastivat karjaa, murhasivat kansalaisia ja polttivat taloja.
ellauri283.html on line 397: Lopullinen rauhansopimus allekirjoitettiin 9. tammikuuta 2005 Nairobissa. Rauhansopimuksen ehdot ovat seuraavat:
ellauri283.html on line 479: Burkina Fason varhaista historiaa tunnetaan vain paloittain, ja varhaiset todisteet ovat lähinnä kivikirveitä. Lobien ja bonobojen esivanhemmat olivat varhaisimpia maanviljelijöitä. Korjaan bobojen. Bobo oli 1 Hukkataipaleiden kultaisista noutajista. Kyllä nuo tytöt kexii kexeliäitä koiran nimiä!
ellauri283.html on line 499: Burkina Faso on monirotuinen valtio, ja siellä elää yli 60 etnistä ryhmittymää. Mosit on merkittävin ryhmä, ja vuonna 2010 Burkina Fason asukkaista 52,5 prosenttia kuului heihin. Fulbien osuus oli 8,4 prosenttia, gurmien 6,8 prosenttia ja bobojen 4,8 prosenttia. Kaikkiaan vuoden 1986 tietojen mukaan noin 94 % burkinafasolaisista kuuluu nigeriläis-kongolaisia kieliä puhuviin kansoihin. Gurilaisen ryhmän kieliä puhuvat mosit ja heidän sukukansansa dagarit, biriforit, nankanset ja kusasit ovat perinteisesest asuneet maan keskiosassa Valkoisen Voltan alueella. Lobit asuvat maan lounaisosassa ja bobot Malin rajaseudulla Bobo-Dioulasson koillispuolella. Grusit sukukansoineen elävät Ghanan rajaseuduilla, gurmat kaakossa Beninin rajalla, senufot lännessä sekä Kankalaban tasangolla, dogonit Bandiagaran vuoristoseudulla. Mandelaisen ryhmän kieliä puhuvat samot, soninket ja djulat asuvat maan luoteisosassa erillisinä ryhminä gurilaisten kansojen joukossa, bisat Valkoisen Voltan varrella lähellä Ghanan rajaa. Atlanttiseen kieliryhmään kuuluvat maan luoteisosassa asuvat fulbet. Maan pohjoisosan puoliautiomaata asuttavat paimentolaisuutta harjoittavat tuaregit ja heidän länsipuolellaan songhait. Kaupungeissa on hausoja, libanonilaisia ja ranskalaisia.
ellauri283.html on line 533: Burkina Fason etnisesti monimuotinen valtio, ja siellä elää yli 60 etnistä ryhmittymää. Mosit on merkittävin ryhmä, ja vuonna 2010 Burkina Fason asukkaista 52,5 prosenttia kuului heihin. Fulbien osuus oli 8,4 prosenttia, gurmien 6,8 prosenttia ja bobojen 4,8 prosenttia. Kaikkiaan vuoden 1986 tietojen mukaan noin 94 % burkinafasolaisista kuuluu nigeriläis-kongolaisia kieliä puhuviin kansoihin. Gurilaisen ryhmän kieliä puhuvat mosit ja heidän sukukansansa dagarit, biriforit, nankanset ja kusasit ovat perinteisesest asuneet maan keskiosassa Valkoisen Voltan alueella. Lobit asuvat maan lounaisosassa ja bobot Malin rajaseudulla Bobo-Dioulasson koillispuolella. Grusit sukukansoineen elävät Ghanan rajaseuduilla, gurmat kaakossa Beninin rajalla, senufot lännessä sekä Kankalaban tasangolla, dogonit Bandiagaran vuoristoseudulla. Mandelaisen ryhmän kieliä puhuvat samot, soninket ja djulat asuvat maan luoteisosassa erillisinä ryhminä gurilaisten kansojen joukossa, bisat Valkoisen Voltan varrella lähellä Ghanan rajaa. Atlanttiseen kieliryhmään kuuluvat maan luoteisosassa asuvat fulbet. Maan pohjoisosan puoliautiomaata asuttavat paimentolaisuutta harjoittavat tuaregit ja heidän länsipuolellaan songhait. Kaupungeissa on hausoja, libanonilaisia ja ranskalaisia.
ellauri283.html on line 538: Noin 50 % malilaisista edustaa mandekieliä puhuvia kansoja, joihin kuuluvat bambarat maan länsi- ja keskiosissa, mandinkat lounaassa, soninket Mauritanian rajalla ja djulat itäosan kaupungeissa. Toiseksi suurin ryhmä ovat puolipaimentolaisina elävät fulbet varsinkin maan keskiosassa (17 % väestöstä). Kaakossa on gurilaisia kieliä puhuvia senufoja, dogoneja ja boboja (12 %). Nigerjoen keskijuoksun varrella asuvat songhait (6 %) ja heidän pohjoispuolellaan Saharassa paimentolaisuutta harjoittavat tuaregit ja arabiankieliset maurit (10 %).
ellauri284.html on line 81: Hoblan kompakysymys
ellauri284.html on line 83: Kompakysymys: kumpi näyttäisi kuvan perusteella olevan rauhan ja kumpi rahan asialla, vapaan maailman hymyilevät johtajat (vas.) vaiko Hoblassa länsipropagandaa levittävä, kommunismista kapitalismiin kääntynyt kieronnäköinen työtön harppisaku (oik.)?
ellauri284.html on line 89: Vad är det som är värst fel med kineserna? Det är inte Xi eller så, än mer än kärnproblemet i Ukraina är Mr. Putin. Västerländsk propaganda fokuserar alltid på ledare, båda hemma och hos fienderna. Det är konstigt för demokrater som hävdar att folket är i roteln. Också i de asiatiska diktaturerna är ledare beroende av makteliten och folket, såsom de Waals observerade hos chimpanserna.
ellauri284.html on line 213: Kun Britannian hallitus kysyi Bothalta, hyökkäisivätkö hänen joukkonsa Saksan Lounais-Afrikkaan, vastaus oli, että he voisivat ja tekisivät. Etelä-Afrikan joukot mobilisoitiin maiden välistä rajaa pitkin kenraali Henry Lukinin ja everstiluutnantti Manie Maritzin johdolla syyskuun alussa 1914. 19. syyskuuta 1914 toinen joukko miehitti Saksan Lüderitzin sataman. Kun Maritzin kapina oli tukahdutettu, Etelä-Afrikan armeija jatkoi toimintaansa Saksan Lounais-Afrikkaan ja valloitti sen heinäkuuhun 1915 mennessä.
ellauri284.html on line 224: Blackadder Goes Forth tapahtuu vuonna 1917 länsirintamalle ensimmäisen maailmansodan juoksuhaudoissa. Kapteeni Edmund Blackadder (Rowan Atkinson) on brittiarmeijan ammattisotilas, joka on suuren sodan puhkeamiseen asti nauttinut suhteellisen vaarattomista tilanteista olemassaolostaan taistelevia alkuperäiskansoja vastaan, jotka olivat yleensä "kaksi jalkaa pitkiä ja aseistettuja kuivatulla ruoholla". Joutuessaan loukkuun juoksuhaudoissa suunnitellun toisen "ison työnnön" aikana, hänen huolensa on välttää hänen lähettämisensä "yli huipulle" varmaan kuolemaan. Sarja kertoo siis Blackadderin yrityksistä paeta juoksuhaudoista erilaisten suunnitelmien kautta, joista suurin osa epäonnistuu huonon onnen, väärinkäsitysten ja tovereiden yleisen epäpätevyyden vuoksi. Yllämainitut toverit ovat hänen toissijainen, idealistinen edvardiaaninen ylemmäs- luutnantti George St Barleigh (Hugh Laurie) ja heidän syvästi tyhmä mutta sitkeä sotamies S. Baldrick (Tony Robinson).
ellauri284.html on line 243: Sarja muistelee useita todellisia historiallisia sodan tapahtumia, kuten joulutauon vuonna 1914. Blackadder muistelee tapahtumaa: "Molemmat osapuolet etenivät yhden joulupisun aikana pidemmälle kuin kahden ja puolen seuraavan sodan vuoden aikana." Viitataan myös aikakauden populaarikulttuuriin sekä aiempaan sarjaan. Jaksossa "Private Plane" nähdään Lord Flashheartin ja Bobin hahmojen paluu toisesta sarjan "Bells" -jaksosta sekä myös saksalaisen lentävä ässä, Baron von Richthofen. Kolmannen jakson "Major Star" juonen lanka sisältää Blackadderin vastenmielisyyden mykkäelokuvatähteen Charlie Chapliniin, jota hän pitää "yhtä hauskana kuin saada nuoli kaulan läpi ja sitten huomata, että siihen on sidottu bensalasku". Totta Mooses Rowan, Charlie on täysin huumoriton kaatuilija. Toinen viittaus viitattiin Sudaniin, jonka sodan veteraani Blackadder oli. Toisin kuin brittien messinki, Blackadder näkee brittien liiallisen itseluottamuksen läpi: aikaisemmat voitot jotka tukahduttivat siirtomaakapinat olivat valmistautumista suureen siirtomaasotaan.
ellauri284.html on line 246: 1Saksi-Coburgin ja Gothan talo. Vuonna 1917 Victorian pojanpoika, kuningas George V, muutti kuninkaallisen talon nimen Saxe-Coburgista ja Gothasta Windsoriksi yrittääkseen rauhoittaa brittiläisiä nationalistisia tunteita.
ellauri284.html on line 256: obretagne.com/images/rennes-saintmelaine_4.jpg" height="500+x" />
ellauri284.html on line 309: Idean isäksi epäillään toista ex-poliisia, Raimo Majuria, joka Israeliin muuton myötä oli muuttanut nimensä Ram Laoriksi. Nuoruudessaan hän oli osallistunut yhdistetyn miehenä Suomen joukkueessa kaksiin talviolympialaisiin: Innsbruckissa vuonna 1964 ja Grenoblessa vuonna 1968.
ellauri284.html on line 357: Poliisimies Raimo Majuri sai Israilin kansalaisuuden ja muutti nimensä juutalaiseksi nimeksi Ram Laor. Majuri oli hyvää pataa Israilin salaisen poliisin MOSSAD:in kanssa ja oli paljastanut heille, että suomalaiset YK-joukot olivat keränneet sotamateriaalia Siinain-erämaan taistelutantereelta ja kuljettaneet ne Suomeen Pääesikunnan tutkittavaksi. Israil ei koskaan suostunut luovuttamaan Majuria Suomeen vaikka Suomen viranomaiset olivat esittäneet heille luovutuspyynnön Majurista. Palveli YK-joukoissa Kyproksella kapteenina kenraali Siilasvuon adjutanttina. Nykysin tuo huumediileri asuu Jerusalemissa Israilissa ja toisella nimellä, eikä hänellä ole Suomeen asiaa, kun on vielä selvittämättömiä asioita. Siellä Johny Liebkindkin piileskeli lakia. Vaan päässyt on Rami pälkähästä. Viimeisten, Ruotsista saatujen kuulumisien mukaan ajelee Hesassa vuorobussia, HKL:n.
ellauri284.html on line 400: Eastwoodin tunnustuksia ovat neljä Oscaria, neljä Golden Globe -palkintoa, kolme César-palkintoa ja AFI Life Achievement Award -palkinto. Vuonna 2000 hän sai Italian Venetsian elokuvajuhlien Kultaisen leijonan palkinnon, joka kunnioitti hänen elinaikaisia saavutuksiaan. Hänelle myönnettiin kaksi Ranskan korkeinta siviilitunnustusta, hän sai Ordre des Arts et des Lettresin komentajan vuonna 1994 ja Kunnialegionin vuonna 2007.
ellauri284.html on line 422: "Mennyt aika, edelläkävijä, yksinäinen, joka toimii yksin, ilman yhteiskunnan etua. Sillä on yleensä jotain tekemistä jonkinlaisen koston kanssa; hän hoitaa koston itse, ei soita poliisille. Kuten Robin Hood. Se on viimeinen maskuliininen raja. Luulen, että romanttinen myytti, vaikka nykyään on vaikea ajatella mitään romanttista. Länsimaissa voit ajatella, Tsiisus, oli aika, jolloin ihminen oli yksin, hevosen selässä, siellä, missä ihminen ei ole vielä pilannut maata." (Eastwood, länsimaisten yksinäisten kuvaamisen filosofisesta viehätyksestä.)
ellauri284.html on line 516: Videolla nuori poika näkyy lähestyvän Nobelin rauhanpalkinnon saajaa ennen kuin hän kysyy: "Voinko halata sinua?"
ellauri284.html on line 546: obile/delivered/Latitude.jpg" width="30%" />
ellauri284.html on line 548: Osa laajempaa kehitystä, M3M Golfestatea,nauttien siten all inclusive -palveluista. • 360° Katolla sijaitseva observatorion kansi, josta
ellauri284.html on line 671: Vuodesta 2001 lähtien Global 500 -listalla olevien yritysten maantieteellisessä jakaumassa on tapahtunut merkittävä muutos. Suurin osa tästä kasvusta johtuu Kiinan Global 500 -listalla olevien yritysten lukumäärän nopeasta kasvusta, joita oli 135 vuoteen 2021 mennessä, kun vuonna 2001 niitä oli vain 10. Myös eurooppalaisten yritysten osuus pieneni 158:sta 143:een saman ajanjakson aikana.
ellauri284.html on line 674: Alue Yritykset Globaali osuus
ellauri284.html on line 684: oberts_of_Kandahar.jpg" />
ellauri284.html on line 686: 82-vuotias sotamarsalkka Jaarli Roberts, maailmankuulu sotilas, vilustui vieraillessaan sotilaiden luona juoksuhaudoissa ja kuoli rauhallisesti, yhtä varmasti kuin hän olisi kuollut taistellessaan urheiden sotilaiden johdossa, joita hän rakasti niin hyvin.
ellauri284.html on line 688: Robertsin Kandaharissa ja Kabulissa saavuttamien voittojen ansiosta britit pystyivät vetäytymään nolosti päättyneestä Afganistanin valloitusyrityksestään neuvotteluteitse. Vuonna 1881 Roberts nimitettiin Natalin kuvernööriksi ja samalla uudeksi ylipäälliköksi ensimmäisessä buurisodassa, mutta sotatoimet ehtivät loppua brittien tappioon ennen kuin hän pääsi ottamaan komennon. Saatuaan vuonna 1883 ylennyksen kenraaliluutnantiksi hän toimi Intian joukkojen ylipäällikkönä 1885–1893. Tuona aikana käydyssä kolmannessa Burman sodassa Robertsin panos rajoittui lähinnä Intian brittiläisten joukkojen höykyttämiseen. Vuodesta 1895 hän oli Irlannin miehitysjoukkojen ylipäällikkönä.
ellauri284.html on line 689: Toisessa buurisodassa Roberts johti ”intialaisten upseerien” ryhmää, joka taisteli vaikutusvallasta ”afrikkalaisten upseerien” kanssa.
ellauri284.html on line 690: Roberts kuoli muutamaa kuukautta ensimmäisen maailmansodan syttymisen jälkeen marraskuussa 1914 flunssaan ollessaan vierailulla intialaisten brittijoukkojen luona rintamalla Ranskassa. Hänet haudattiin valtion kustannuxella.
ellauri284.html on line 692: Jaarli Roberts, Kandaharista Afganistanista ja Pretoriasta Transvaalin siirtokunnasta ja Waterfordin kaupungista, oli arvonimi Yhdistyneen kuningaskunnan Peeragessa. Se luotiin vuonna 1901 kenttämarsalkka Frederick Robertsille, 1. Baron Robertsille . Hänet luotiin jo paroni Robertsiksi Afganistanin Kandaharista ja Waterfordin kaupungista vuonna 1892, ja hänestä tehtiin varakreivi St Pierre samaan aikaan kun hänelle annettiin jaarlin asema.
ellauri284.html on line 696: Paroni kuoli sukupuuttoon lordi Robertsin kuoltua vuonna 1914. Häntä seurasi viscountin ja jaarlin virassa erityisjäännösten mukaan hänen vanhin tyttärensä, toinen kreivitär. Hän kuoli naimattomana, ja hänen seuraajakseen tuli hänen nuorempi sisarensa, kolmas kreivitär. Jälkimmäisen poika ja ainoa lapsi luutnantti Frederick Roberts Alexander Lewin kuoli taistelussa toisessa maailmansodassa, ja sen seurauksena viscountiteetti ja kreivitär kuolivat sukupuuttoon, kun kolmas kreivitär kuoli vuonna 1955. Kaikki vilustuivat.
ellauri284.html on line 698: Frederick Roberts oli Sir Abraham Robertsin poika, joka oli myös arvostettu lyhyt sotilas ja kenraali. Kenraali Sir Abraham Roberts GCB (11. huhtikuuta 1784 – 28. joulukuuta 1873) oli brittiläinen Itä-Intian komppanian armeijan kenraali, joka palveli lähes 50 vuotta Intiassa.
ellauri284.html on line 700: oberts_-_Project_Gutenberg_eText_16528.jpg" />
ellauri284.html on line 702: Tällä Robertsilla oli kaksi poikaa, jotka molemmat saivat korkeimmat arvosanat Britannian armeijassa. Yksi poika ja pojanpoika voittivat Victoria Crossin, joka on korkein kunnianosoitus urheudesta kahden jalan pituisen ruohonkorrella aseistetun vihollisen edessä Britannian armeijassa. Äijä eli 89-vuotiaaxi Irlannin tiluxilla ennenkuin vilustui. Molemmilla oli Bunyipin sedän whiskerit ja jaarlilla vielä keisari Wilhelm wiixet.
ellauri284.html on line 704: Abraham Roberts oli paikallisesti kuuluisan Waterfordilaisen suvun jäsen. Hän oli Annen (Sandys) ja pastori John Robertsin poika, maistraatti Waterfordin kreivikunnassa ja Itäväylän lukion rehtori.
ellauri284.html on line 707: Roberts sr. sijoitettiin Bathin ritarikunnan (GCB) ritarikunnan suurristiksi. Hän lähti Intiasta vuonna 1853 asuakseen Irlantiin toisen vaimonsa kanssa, joka eli häntäkin kauemmin. Hänellä oli myös koti Bristolissa, 25 Royal York Crescent, Bristol, Somerset BS8 – Englanti.
ellauri284.html on line 709: Intiassa englantilais-irlantilaiseen perheeseen syntynyt Roberts jr. liittyi East India Companyn armeijaan ja palveli nuorena upseerina Intian kapinassa, jonka aikana hänelle myönnettiin Victoria Cross urheilusta. Sitten hänet siirrettiin Britannian armeijaan ja hän taisteli Abessinian retkikunnassa ja toisessa anglo-Afganistani-sodassa, jossa hänen holtiton käytöksensä ansaitsi hänelle laajan maineen.
ellauri284.html on line 711: Sitten hänet siirrettiin Britannian armeijaan ja hän taisteli Abessinian retkikunnassa ja toisessa anglo-Afganistani-sodassa, jossa hänen käytöksensä ansaitsi hänelle laajan maineen. Roberts jatkoi palvelemaan Intian ylipäällikkönä ennen kuin hän johti Britannian joukkoja vuoden ajan toisen buurisodan aikana. Hänestä tuli myös viimeinen joukkojen ylipäällikkö ennen viran lakkauttamista vuonna 1904. Hänestä tuli Aide-de-Leiri isänsä luo vuonna 1852.
ellauri284.html on line 721: Pienikokoisena miehenä (jaardi ja noin 2 jalkaa) Roberts tunnettiin hellästi joukkojensa ja laajemman brittiyleisön keskuudessa nimellä "Bobs", ja häntä kunnioitettiin yhtenä Britannian johtavista sotilashahmoista aikana, jolloin Brittiläinen valtakunta saavutti voimansa. Hänestä tuli Britannian armeijan symboli, ja myöhemmässä elämässä hänestä tuli vaikutusvaltainen vahvemman puolustuksen kannattaja vastauksena kasvavaan uhkaan, jonka Saksan valtakunta asetti Britannialle ennen ensimmäistä maailmansotaa.
ellauri284.html on line 723: oberts_finding_General_Nicholson.jpg/340px-Lieutenant_Roberts_finding_General_Nicholson.jpg" />
ellauri284.html on line 724: Luutnantti Frederick Roberts löytää luultavasti haavoittuneen kenraali Nicholsonin Kashmirin portilta piileskelemästä pöydän alta Delhin piirityksen aikana.
ellauri284.html on line 726: Luutnantti Robertsin urheus on kaikissa tilanteissa ollut merkittävintä. Seuratessaan vetäytyvää vihollista 2. tammikuuta 1858 Khodagungessa hän näki kaukaa kahden Sepoyn lähtevän vapaalipulla. Luutnantti Roberts laittoi kannuja hevoselleen ja ohitti heidät juuri heidän ollessaan tulossa kylään. He kääntyivät välittömästi ympäri ja esittivät muskettinsa hänelle, ja yksi miehistä painoi vahingossa liipaisinta, mutta onneksi hatut katkesivat ja tämä urhoollinen nuori upseeri katkaisi lipunkantajan ja hän otti lipun haltuunsa. Hän myös katkaisi samana päivänä toisen Sepoyn, joka seisoi loitolla musketilla ja pistimellä pitäen loitolla Sowaria. Luutnantti Roberts ratsasti ratsumiehen avuksi ja ryntäsi Sepoylle yhdellä miekkaiskulla häntä kasvoihin ja tappoi hänet paikalla.
ellauri284.html on line 728: 23. joulukuuta 1899 Roberts lähti Englannista palatakseen Etelä-Afrikkaan esikuntapäällikkönsä Lord Kitchenerin kanssa RMS Dunottarin linnassa ottaakseen brittijoukkojen yleiskomennon toisessa buurisodassa edellisen komentajan, kenraali Redvers Bullerin alaisina . Hän saapui Kapkaupunkiin 10. tammikuuta 1900. Hänen nimityksensä oli vastaus sodan alkuviikkojen tappioiden sarjaan, ja siihen liittyi valtavien vahvistusten lähettäminen. Päämajan henkilökuntaan hän nimitti sotilaita kaukaa: Kitchener (esikuntapäällikkö) Sudanista, Frederick Burnham (partiopäällikkö), amerikkalainen partiolainen Klondikesta, George Henderson Staff Collegesta, Neville Chamberlain Afganistanista ja William Nicholson (sotilassihteeri) Kalkuttasta.
ellauri284.html on line 730: Roberts aloitti kaksituumaisena hyökkäyksen johtaen henkilökohtaisesti vetelehtimistä avoimen veldtin poikki Orange Free Stateen, kun taas Buller yritti karkottaa buurit Natalin kukkuloilta – jonka tuloxena lordi Robertsin poika tapettiin ja ansaitsi kuolemanjälkeisen WC:n. Hänen edistymistänsä viivästytti hänen tuhoisa yritys järjestää armeijansa logistiikkajärjestelmä uudelleen Intian armeijan mallin mukaan keskellä sotaa. Seurauksena oleva kaaos ja tarvikkeiden puute vaikuttivat vakavaan vilustumisepidemiaan, joka aiheutti brittijoukoille paljon raskaampia tappioita kuin ne kärsivät taisteluissa. Bugger it.
ellauri284.html on line 732: Robertsin suunnittelemiin strategioihin, joilla pakotettiin boerien kommandot alistumaan, kuuluivat keskitysleirit ja maatilojen polttaminen. Olosuhteet keskitysleireillä, jotka Roberts piti muodoksi hallita perheitä, joiden maatilat hän oli tuhonnut, alkoivat rappeutua nopeasti, kun buurien suuri tulva ylitti pienen brittijoukon selviytymiskyvyn. Leireillä ei ollut tilaa, ruokaa, sanitaatiota, lääkkeitä ja sairaanhoitoa, mikä johti rehottavaan sairauteen ja erittäin korkeaan kuolleisuuteen niille, jotka saapuivat alueelle. Sodan loppuun mennessä 26 370 naista ja lasta (81 % oli lapsia) oli kuollut keskitysleireillä. Lyhyen ajan vuonna 1900 Roberts antoi myös armeijalle luvan käyttää siviilipanttivankeja junien suojelemiseksi buurien sissiyksiköiltä. Ei olisi kyllä kannattanut potkia Mahatma Gandhia junasta ratapenkalle. Se pahentui siitä briteille ikihyväxi.
ellauri284.html on line 734: Buurien tasavaltojen pääkaupungit miehitettyinä ja arvellen sodan ilmeisesti päättyneen 12. joulukuuta 1900 Roberts luovutti komennon Lord Kitchenerille. Roberts palasi Englantiin saadakseen vielä lisää kunnianosoituksia: hänestä tehtiin Sukkanauharitarikunnan ritari ja hän loi myös Jaarli Robertsin, Kandaharin Afganistanissa ja Pretorian Transvaalin siirtokunnassa sekä Waterfordin kaupungin varakreivi St Pierre.
ellauri284.html on line 738: Lord Robertsista tuli viimeinen joukkojen komentaja 3. tammikuuta 1901. Virkakautensa aikana hän esitteli keximänsä lyhkäsille sotilaille sopivan Short Magazine Lee Enfield -kiväärin ja 18 punnan aseen sekä tarjosi parannettua koulutusta ja koulutusta sotilaille. Syyskuussa 1902 lordi Roberts ja sotaministeri St John Brodrick vierailivat Saksassa osallistuakseen Saksan armeijan harjoituksiin keisari Wilhelmin vieraana. Hän toimi ylipäällikkönä kolme vuotta ennen kuin virka lakkautettiin Lord Esherin suosituksen mukaisesti Esherin raportissa helmikuussa 1904.
ellauri284.html on line 774: Ensimmäisen maailmansodan sotamarsalkan rintakuva paljastettiin Waterfordissa. Uulalaa! ulvahtivat fanit. Rinnan paljastuksen suoritti everstiluutnantti Alexander Turner, nykyinen komentaja Irlannin kaartin rykmentistä, jota johti alkuaikoina juurikin Jaarli Roberts.
ellauri284.html on line 775: Kenttämarsalkka Roberts syntyi Intiassa, mutta hänen katsottiin olevan kotoisin Waterfordista, sillä hän meni naimisiin kaupungissa ja vietti siellä paljon aikaa. Hän oli tunnetun arkkitehdin John Robertsin pojanpoika, joka suunnitteli sekä Irlannin ainoan kirkon että katolisia katedraaleja Waterfordissa sekä monia muita kuuluisia rakennuksia.
ellauri284.html on line 776: Dominick Chilcott kertoi, että kuningatar Victoria perusti Irlannin kaartin vuonna 1900 osoituksena irlantilaisten sotilaiden panoksesta toiseen buurien sotaan, mahdollisesti Bobsin idean seurauksena.
ellauri284.html on line 777: Jaarli Frederick Roberts of Waterford oli vanhin sodassa kirjattu sotilaallinen uhri. Hän vilustui.
ellauri284.html on line 789: piirityksen jälkeen (mitäs minä sanoin). Tämä vielä: vuonna 1690, Williamite-sodan aikana, jakobiittien Irlannin armeija pakotettiin luovuttamaan Waterford Boynen taistelun jälkeen.
ellauri284.html on line 790: 1700-luku oli Waterfordin valtavan vaurauden aikaa. Suurin osa kaupungin parhaasta arkkitehtuurista ilmestyi tänä aikana, ei kyllä kiitos John Roberzin. Pysyvä sotilaallinen läsnäolo perustettiin kaupunkiin, kun ratsuväen kasarmi valmistui 1700-luvun lopulla.
ellauri285.html on line 68: Every living creature has an anus: Ants, horses, eagles . . . And us. While most creatures’ anuses do their jobs with little fuss, not so with human beings. The design of our anus is Providence’s little joke to keep us humble.
ellauri285.html on line 70: Consider, for example, the horse. We live across from a horse breeding establishment so I’ve had ample opportunity to observe these estimable animals in action. While they shit copiously they never get any on their hair (when was the last time you saw a horse’s behind fouled by its own waste?). The reason for this lies in the design of the horse anus. It is an extensible device that, when a BM is about to pass, protrudes a few critical inches, allowing the manure to drop straight to the ground without mussing a single hair. To further forfend fouling, there is no hair in the immediate vicinity of the horse’s anus, nor on the extensible process itself. What a remarkable design.
ellauri285.html on line 74: To accommodate our flawed design, we are taught from birth to use wads of paper, magazine pages, dried corncobs and even stones, to wipe our filthy behinds. And this we must do! If we did not wipe, we would reek of dung from the cake of dingleberries between our cheeks and our pants, skirts, caftans and burkas, would be fouled with nicotine stains and clouds of flies would follow us down the street like goslings.
ellauri285.html on line 135: Hullua miten ihan sama mistä aiheesta TIEDE lehden artikkelit ovat, ne alkaa samalla Ukraina-uskontunnustuxella. Vittuako teor. filosofian professorilta edes haetaan neuvoa moraalikysymyxissä. Sitä vartenhan on Timo Airaxisen viran haltija, joka näkyy olevan joku Antti Kuappinen. Kyllä on suomalaisen filosofian maine mennyt manalle. Maria Lasonen on obsessiivinen kiipijä ja Kuappinen ilmeisesti talousliberaali sekin.
ellauri285.html on line 145: The objects included coins, pipes, boxes, figurines and cuneiform tablets that depicted various biblical scenes, including Moses handing out the tablets of the Ten Commandments. On November 14, 1907, the Detroit News reported that Soper and Scotford were selling copper crowns they had supposedly found on heads of prehistoric kings, and copies of Noah's diary.
ellauri285.html on line 151: Kelsey and Jastrow deemed the Michigan Relics frauds containing a "horrible mixture" of jumbled ancient scripts. Mary Robson, who lived in a room next door to Scotford's sons Percy and Charles, stated that the boys manufactured more "relics" all the time.
ellauri285.html on line 217: Onko Lesonen persepektivisti? Onko se pirsonisti? Ei se kyllä myönnä, mutta samaa MIT etiikkaa se jauhaa. Miners problem ratkeaa ihan höpsismillä, paras utiliteetin odotusarvo tulee kun ei häslää midiä. Onpas teoreettista filosofiaa.
ellauri285.html on line 222: Why are norms like Choose the best! and Believe p just in case p is true! inadequate? Note at the outset that the problem does not essentially assume a consequentialist way of thinking. Se australian jutku, personisti Peter Seeger oli tollanen konsekventialisti. Samaa porukkaa on jenkkibiljardöörit joka puhuu efektiivisestä altruismista. Kaikki massi mulle niin siitä riittää teillekin jotain roippeita.
ellauri285.html on line 232: New Evil Demon probleema
ellauri285.html on line 235: Internalism is the thesis that no fact about the world can provide reasons for action independently of desires and beliefs. Externalism is the thesis that reasons can be objective features of the world.
ellauri285.html on line 240: One popular argument for internalism is known as the 'new evil demon problem'.
ellauri285.html on line 242: internalistien mielestä "our" intuitions are that the subject is justified in their beliefs in spite of being systematically deceived. Eli se on vaan tyhmä muttei tuhma. Some take the new evil demon problem as a reason for rejecting externalist views of justification. Höpsistä. Kyllä tyyppi voi olla korvausvelvollimen vaikka pelkkää tyhmyyttään. Ei se muita kiinnosta mixi se on tunaroinut, ne haluu korvauxen. Hemmetti mitä vanhaa paskaa nää uudet jenkit jauhavat. Tällästä cat's cradle tyyppistä askarointia, käteenvetoa villalangat sormissa. "Entäpä jos..."
ellauri285.html on line 267: Aloitan tämän luvun lyhyellä katsauksella elämän merkityksellisyyden tai merkityksen käsitteeseen osassa 2. Luvuissa 3–5 käsitellään kolmea johtavaa kertomustyyppiä siitä, mikä tekee elämästä Merkityksellisen: yliluonnollisuus, subjektivistinen naturismi ja objektivistinen naturismi. Osoittautuu, että että tärkeimmät jakokysymykset koskevat arvon roolia ja luonnetta. Yliluonnolliset ja objektivistiset naturistit uskovat, että sitoutuminen objektiiviseen arvoon on välttämätöntä merkitykselle elämässä, kun taas subjektivistit kieltävät tämän. Yliluonnolliset uskovat aika karkeasti, että Jumalan olemassaolo on tarpeen oikeanlaisen objektiivisen arvon ja oikeanlaisen suhteen kannalta, kun taas Objektivistiset naturistit kiistävät nämä väitteet. Objektivististen luonnontutkijoiden keskuudessa keskeiset keskustelut koskevat subjektiivisen sitoutumisen luonnetta johkin objektiiviseen arvoon (esim raha) sekä erityisesti millainen objektiivinen arvo tarvitaan merkityksellisyyteen.
ellauri285.html on line 273: Aloitetaan arvostuksesta. Erittäin merkittävät merkitysparadigmat, kuten Hannah Arendt tai Marie Curie tai Mary Robinson (n.h.1) ovat ihailun, arvostuksen ja jäljitelmän sekä inspiraation ja kohotuksen lähteet. Jos olemme onnekkaita, meillä on samanlaisia kokemuksia elämän mielekkyyden kokemisesta. Ne näyttävät sisältävän sekoituksen toisiinsa liittyviä ensimmäisen persoonan asenteita: eräänlaista ylpistelyä siitä, mitä olemme tehneet (kutsu sitä omahyväisyydexi, erottaaksesi sen esimerkiksi ylpeydestä omasta maasta, johon syntyminen on vain zägää, lottovoitto), tyytyväisyys ja jopa innostus siitä, mitä teemme, luottavainen toivo vaurastumisesta tulevaisuudessa. Olettaen, että on oikein, että elämän mielekkyyden löytäminen on 1-4 tällaista asennetta, on uskottavaa, että elämä on mielekäs jos tällaiset asenteet ovat oikeutettuja. Muussa tapauxessa elämäsi on absurdia ja se on mennyt totaalisesti päin persettä, ainakin jos sinulla pyyhkii mies.
ellauri285.html on line 285: Teistit, kuten John Cottingham (2003), väittävät, että Jumala on välttämätön ylläpitämään objektiivista moraalia ja objektiivista arvoa yleensä. Tässä kohtaa jumala on tappiollisessa tiimissä, sillä hyvin harvat nykyajan metaetiikan asiantuntijat uskovat, että objektiivinen moraali (tai arvo yleensä) riippuu Jumalasta. Platonin Euthyfronista lähtien on tämmöstä keppi-porkkana etiikkaa pidetty primitiivisenä. (No, jumala voi jälkeenpäin kyllä antaa niille keppiä, Euthyfron tai ei.)
ellauri285.html on line 287: Jumalallisen tarkoituksen teorian keskeinen argumentti liittyi arvoyhteyteen, teesiin, jonka mukaan Objektiivinen arvo on välttämätön elämän merkitykselle. Tätä oletusta ei hyväksytä yleisesti. Subjektivistit katsovat, että objektiivinen arvo ei ole välttämätön tai edes riittävä merkitys. Sen sijaan elämämme on merkityksellistä, kun ize pistämme siihen merkityksee, mitä se sitten onkin. Kuten Harry Nakki sattuvasti sanoo "Omistautuminen sille, mitä rakastaa, riittää tekemään elämästä merkityksellisen riippumatta rakastettujen esineiden vaihto- tai käyttöarvosta." Elämä on merkityxetöntä vain kun se on tyyyllllsää, kun emme tee mitä haluamme tehdä, emmekä halua tehdä mitä teemme.
ellauri285.html on line 291: Meille objektiivisille naturisteille, karkeasti, elämä on merkizevää jos harrastamme objektiivisia arvoja: totta, hyvää ja kaunista. 7 hyvää ja 8 kaunista, tarkemmin sanoen. Ei vaan 4, nimittäin Merkityxen konsekventialismi, ristiriitainen näkemys, teleologinen näkemys, ja fundamentalismi.
ellauri285.html on line 295: Niin sanottujen ristiriitaisten näkemysten mukaan merkityksellisyys vaatii ei vain että edistää jonkin objektiivisen arvon toteutumista, vaan myös täytyy olla kivaa. Tunnetuinta tällaista näkemystä puolustaa Susan Susi (1997, 2010), joka sanoo, että merkitys syntyy "aktiivisesta osallistumisesta objektiivisesti arvokkaisiin hankkeisiin" missä "subjektiivinen vetovoima kohtaa objektiivisen houkuttelevuuden". Olet vaikka julkkis joka saa paljon läpyjä tehdessään näkyvästi charityä.
ellauri285.html on line 299: Objektiivisella puolella Susi korostaa useiden arvokkaiden projektien moninaisuutta, jotka menevät moraalin lisäksi suhteiden ylläpitämiseen, taiteeseen, luonnonsuojeluun, sarjayrittämiseen ja huippuosaamiseen, vain muutamia asioita mainitakseni. Yhteistä heille on vain se, että niillä on tarpeeksi rahallista arvoa sen lisäksi, että se on miellyttävä tai mielenkiintoinen tai tyydyttävä agentille itselleen ansaitakseen vakavan ajan ja vaivan investoinnin (2010, 37–38). Hän huomauttaa myös, että ei riitä yrittää tehdä jotain objektiivisesti arvokasta, pitää todella onnistua siinä. Vizi tää on jo tosi länkkärimäistä meisinkiä.
ellauri285.html on line 305: Fundamentalistit sattuu siinä kohdalleen että parasta ja merkizevintä on olla tämmönen yleistä hyvää edistävä tiedemies. Sensijaan Robin Hood tyyppinen tulonsiirtotoiminta ei käy, koska siinä laahuxen etu loukkaa omistusoikeuxia.
ellauri285.html on line 347: Mary Robinson (née Darby; 27 November 1757 – 26 December 1800) was an English actress, poet, dramatist, novelist, and celebrity figure. She lived in England, in the cities of Bristol and London; she also lived in France and Germany for a time. She enjoyed poetry from the age of seven and started working, first as a teacher and then as actress, from the age of fourteen. She wrote many plays, poems and novels. She was a celebrity, gossiped about in newspapers, famous for her acting and writing. During her lifetime she was known as "the English Sappho". She earned her nickname "Perdita" for her role as Perdita (heroine of Shakespeare's The Winter's Tale) in 1779. She was the first public mistress of King George IV while he was still Prince of Wales.
ellauri285.html on line 349: Mary Robinson (s. 21. toukokuuta 1944) on irlantilainen poliitikko ja Irlannin ensimmäinen naispresidentti, joka hallitsi maata 1990–1997. Hän oli myös ensimmäinen Irlannin presidentti, jota ei valittu keskustaoikeistolaisen valtapuolueen Fianna Fáilin riveistä.
ellauri285.html on line 353: By Mary Robinson
ellauri285.html on line 399: “A woman of undoubted Genius,” according to Samuel Taylor Coleridge, Mary Robinson was an English actress, author, celebrity, and ardent supporter of the rights of women who gained considerable fame during her lifetime. Known by the nickname “Perdita,” after her role in Shakespeare’s The Winter’s Tale, peddled to The Prince of Wales her tail.
ellauri285.html on line 406: Konrad Zacharias Lorenz (* 7. November 1903 in Wien; † 27. Februar 1989 ebenda) war ein österreichischer Zoologe, Medizin-Nobelpreisträger und einer der Hauptvertreter der klassischen vergleichenden Verhaltensforschung (Ethologie). Er selbst nannte dieses Forschungsgebiet bis 1949 „Tierpsychologie“. Lorenz wird im deutschsprachigen Raum als deren Gründervater angesehen. Er war Mitarbeiter des Rassenpolitischen Amtes der NSDAP und Direktor des Max-Planck-Instituts für Verhaltensphysiologie. Er war ein Kindheitsfreund Karl Poppers. Lorenzin nazimielisyydesytä ja arjalaisuudesta nousseet epäilyxet hälvenivät: dieser habe „aus seiner Zustimmung zum Nationalsozialismus niemals ein Hehl gemacht. Auch seine arische Abstammung ist in Ordnung.“
ellauri285.html on line 425: Patti luovutti ja lopetti kirjallisuuden opinnot approbaturiin kun koki Eino Leinon Tumman liian omaxi. Ei ollut ensimmäinen eikä viimeinen. Isättömyyttään syytteli kun ei jaxanut yrittää. Linkolakin jäi isättömäxi 9-vuotiaana. Ei ollut enää isärehtori kieltämässä heittämästä ohikulkijoita lumipallolla.
ellauri285.html on line 488: "Kuolema on kaikkein objektiivisin ilmiö. Mitään luonnonvalintaa vastaavaa ei ole olemassa. Kuolema korjaa nekin joita se ei ansaitse."
ellauri285.html on line 581: Tšernobylin lähellä Ukrainassa V.I. Lenin -ydinvoimalan reaktorissa syttyi grafiittitulipalo, joka aiheutti historian vakavimman ydinonnettomuuden. 31 ihmistä kuoli heti, ja suuria määriä radioaktiivisuutta pääsi ympäristöön. Eläimet kiittivät.
ellauri285.html on line 615: Sakari Määttänen kirjoitti Helsingin Sanomien kolumnissaan 10. joulukuuta 1988 "Saksat eivät yhdisty huomenna" vain vuosi ennen Itä-Saksan kommunistihallinnon kaatumista, että "DDR on hyvinvointivaltio, ja sellaisena aivan yhtä pysyvä kuin ja tukeva kuin Itävalta", ja että se "tuottaa kohtuullisesti ja riittävästi palveluja ja kulutustavaraa kansalaistensa käyttöön". Määttäsen mukaan Itä-Saksan "muutamat toisinajattelijat" olisivat voineet muuttaa länteen, mutta eivät niin tee, koska "DDR:ssä työttömyys, kilpailu ja sosiaaliset sairaudet eivät ole samaa luokkaa kuin Saksan Liittotasavallassa". Kaiken kaikkiaan kirjoituksessaan hän kritisoi Max Jakobsonia, joka oli arvellut Saksojen yhdistymistä ulkoasianvaliokunnan 70-vuotisjuhlassa. Määttäsen mukaan Jakobsonin ajattelu edusti menneisyyttä eikä pysähtyneisyyttä, eikä "muutoksen merkkejä Saksojen suhteissa ole havaittavissa."
ellauri285.html on line 643: Laureenska oli hyvin hyvin vihainen Hoblassa kun puoliarmenialainen Lavrov oli vihjannut nimenomaan juutalaisten joukossa olevan pahoja antisemitistejä, ja että huhutaan Hitlerilläkin olleen juutalaisia sukulaisia. Rumaa valetta! Ettäs kehtaakin! Sellaisia nuo armenialaiset ovat, vielä pahempia petkuttajia kuin jutkut. Muistetaan vaikka Radio Jerevania. Nyttemmin Radio Jerevan on viritetty uudelleen antiputinismin kanavalle.
ellauri285.html on line 680: En 1979, son tiersmondisme revenant à la charge, il participe - essentiellement en tant qu´observateur - à la révolution sandiniste aux côtés des muchachos du Nicaragua aux côtés de Daniel Ortega et Humberto Ortega, qui considèrent le proche de Castro comme un ami. Un crochet par Paris lui fait manquer le renversement du dictateur Somoza en place.
ellauri285.html on line 688: Régis Debray s’intéresse au problème du religieux et de la croyance au sein du groupe social. Son postulat de départ est : il n’y a pas de société sans transcendance, qui fonctionne là comme un phéromone. De même qu’un État laïc a ses obligations morales, les athées ont des valeurs sacrées. Pour lui, cette transcendance est nécessaire à la cohésion sociale. L’Union soviétique avait Lénine, les États-Unis d´Amérique ont George Washington et les pères fondateurs, la Constitution. Il y en avait aussi autrefois en France avec les héros mythiques de la République, comme Danton ou Leclerc.
ellauri285.html on line 712: Pour lui le messager conditionne le message. Sa thèse est : « l’invention de l’écriture alphabétique jointe à une nouvelle technique de partage (le codex) dans un milieu nomade mais sédentarisé a été la condition de naissance de Dieu comme universel ». – Est-ce vous qui avez inventé ça, la médiologie? – C´est un bien grand mot. C´est Victor Hugo qui l´a créée. « Ceci tuera cela ». Dans Notre-Dame de Paris, je vous recommande ce passage : c´est l´archidiacre Frollo, qui a un petit livre de Gutenberg, et qui est devant la cathédrale, et qui dit de façon prophétique « Ceci tuera cela », et dans l´autre main il avait un petit téléphone mobile, et de façon également prophétique: « Ceci tuera cela ».
ellauri285.html on line 755: The first consequential re-evaluation of the mathematical modeling behind the critical positivity ratio was published in 2008 by a group of Finnish researchers from the Systems Analysis Laboratory at Aalto University (Jukka Luoma, Raimo Hämäläinen, and Esa Saarinen). The authors noted that "only very limited explanations are given about the modeling process and the meaning and interpretation of its parameters... [so that] the reasoning behind the model equations remains unclear to the reader"; moreover, they noted that "the model also produces strange and previously unreported behavior under certain conditions... [so that] the predictive validity of the model also becomes problematic."
ellauri285.html on line 759: Fredrickson wrote a response in which she conceded that the mathematical aspects of the critical positivity ratio were "questionable" and that she had "neither the expertise nor the insight" to defend them, but she maintained that the empirical evidence for the existence of a critical positivity ratio was solid. Brown, Sokal, and Friedman, the rebuttal authors, published their response to Fredrickson´s "Update" the next year, maintaining that there was no evidence for a critical positivity ratio. Losada declined to respond to the criticism (indicating to the Chronicle of Higher Education that he was too busy running his consulting business).[verification needed] Hämäläinen and colleagues responded later, passing over the Brown-Sokal-Friedman rebuttal claim of failed criteria for use of differential equations in modeling, instead arguing that there were no fundamental errors in the mathematics itself, only problems related to the model´s justification and interpretation.
ellauri285.html on line 761: A formal retraction for the mathematical modeling elements of the Losada and Fredrickson (2005) paper was issued by the journal, American Psychologist, concluding that both the specific critical positivity ratio of 2.9013 and its upper limit were invalid. The fact that the problems with the paper went unnoticed for years despite the widespread adulatory publicity surrounding the critical positivity ratio concept contributed to a perception of social psychology as a field lacking scientific soundness and rigorous critical thinking. Sokal later stated, "The main claim made by Fredrickson and Losada is so implausible on its face that some red flags ought to have been raised", as would only happen broadly in graduate student Brown´s initiating the collaboration that resulted in the Brown-Sokal-Friedman rebuttal.
ellauri285.html on line 763: Building on research by Barbara Fredrickson suggesting that individuals with a higher ratio of positive to negative emotions tend to have more successful life outcomes, and on studies by Marcial Losada applying differential equations from fluid dynamics to human emotions,[citation needed] Fredrickson and Losada proposed as informative a ratio of positive to negative affect derived from nonlinear dynamics modelling (based on Lorenz systems), which appeared in 2005 in a paper in American Psychologist. The derived combination of expressions and default parameters led them to conclude that a critical ratio of positive to negative affect of exactly 2.9013 separated flourishing from languishing individuals, and to argue that the ideal positivity/negativity ratio lies between 2.9013 and an upper limit ratio of 11.6346. Hence, they claimed that their model predicted cut-off points for the minimum and maximum positivity ratios within which one should observe qualitative changes in an individual´s level of flourishing, specifically, that those within this range of ratios would "flourish", and those outside would "languish".[non-primary source needed] As of January 2014, the 2005 Fredrickson and Losada´s paper had been cited more than 320 times in the psychology literature.
ellauri288.html on line 194: Länsimainen vaihtoehtoinen käsitys totuudesta (amerikkalaisten kehittämä pragmaattinen totuusmääritelmä) ei ole itsestäänselvyys maassa, jossa valtio on adoptoinut neuvostokäsitykset faktoista. Marxismi-leninismin opit eivät tunnustaneet objektiivista tai absoluuttista totuutta. Roskaa, kylläpäs tunnustivat, nimittäin historiallisen materialismin totuuden. Kirjaimellisesti kaikki tiesivät, etteivät Neuvostoliiton vaalit olleet vapaita. Siitä huolimatta vaalituloksiin suhtauduttiin kuin ne olisivat faktoja. Faktoja ne olivatkin. Ehdokasasettelu jo takasi että proletariaatin diktatuuri säilyisi. Ei siitä ollut mitään väärinkäsityxiä.
ellauri288.html on line 276: NPR, full name National Public Radio, is a privately and publicly funded non-profit membership media organization that serves as a national syndicator to 797 public radio stations in the United States of America. Noam Chomsky has criticized NPR as being biased toward ideological power and the status quo. Consumers of information from NPR contend that NPR does its job well. In April 2023, Twitter made the decision to label NPR, as well as the PBS, BBC, and Voice of America as government-funded media outlets following backlash from critics who accused the platform of bias. Twitter initially labeled accounts linked to countries like Russia and China but faced criticism for not applying the same labels to media organizations from Western countries. In response, the company expanded its policy to include NPR.
ellauri288.html on line 406: Aikuisena Kaplinski uskoi, että hänen isänsä oli kaukainen juutalainen ja että hän oli Jacob Frankin sukulainen. Kaplinski olikin hyvin lisääntymiskykyinen: 4 kirjailijan ja Tarton lelumuseon johtajan Tiia Toometin kanssa, 1 ensimmäisestä avioliitostaan Nürkki-Küllike Kaplinskin kanssa ja 1 klassikon Anne Lillin kanssa.
ellauri288.html on line 408: ob_frank.jpg" />
ellauri288.html on line 499: Kaplinskin kolmannessa proosateoksessa Reaalarvud ollaan tekemisissä Lotmanin semioottisen koulukunnan salaliiton kanssa. Insinööri R (reaaliluvut, tämä vihje esiintyy Hoblan ristikossa usein), oli löytänyt matemaattisen yhteyden enkelien luvuttoman sotajoukon ja reaalimaailman välillä. Alef nolla on Beth nolla, se päätteli. Kontinuumihypoteesi ei ilman valinta-axioomaa kyllä todistu. Se on hyvin vahva existenssioletus.
ellauri288.html on line 537: No, Kaplinskia on pidetty Nobel-ehdokkaana, mutta hänen runoutensa ei edusta sellaista maailmanluokan kirjallisuutta, kuten hänen hengenveljensä ja viroksi kääntämänsä nobelisti Tomas Tranströmer, johon verrattuna Kaplinskin ilmaisuvalikko on kapea ja temaattisesti toisteinen.
ellauri288.html on line 644: Ei virise, ei virise ja annan endast alati kõik, kui sobib.
ellauri290.html on line 70: obbery.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri290.html on line 110: Israel's primary objective was to re-open the blocked Straits of Tiran. WTF, they occupied and consequently expropriated most of Palestinian land property. After the fighting had started, political pressure from the United States, the Soviet Union, and the United Nations led to a withdrawal by the three invaders. The episode humiliated the United Kingdom and France and strengthened Nasser. Joka sai sitten kyllä kunnolla nenuun USA:n varustamilta Jehovan sotajoukoilta 10v myöhemmin 7 päivän salamasodassa 1967 (kz. esim. albumia 263).
ellauri294.html on line 61: En obetydande del av pengarna används för att stödja Ukraina i kriget och går bland annat till armén, nationalbanken och organisationer som hjälper internflyktingar. Sedan i mars har Teronlyfans samlat in motsvarande 10 miljoner kronor.
ellauri294.html on line 146: He näyttävät epäilemättä kyseenalaistaneen Paavalin auktoriteetin apostolina, ehkä vedoten Jaakobin (Jeesuksen velipojan) hallitseman Jerusalemin kirkon suurempaan auktoriteettiin .
ellauri294.html on line 152: Paavali selittää, että ympärileikkaus otettiin käyttöön vain väliaikaisena toimenpiteenä, joka ei ole enää tarpeen nyt, kun Abrahamin siemen, Kristus, on tullut kullista. (Ihmispuolikas tuli Davidin lihapalasta, herrapuoli herrasta, se tarkentaa jossain kohdassa.) Paavalin asenne muodostaa suuren vastakohdan Jaakobin, Jeesuksen velipojan, asemalle, jonka ryhmä Jerusalemissa noudatti Tooran noudattamista.
ellauri294.html on line 384: Hollywoodin ohjaajat käyttivät hänen maalauksiaan lähdemateriaalina näkemyksensä muinaisesta maailmasta elokuvissa, kuten DW Griffithin Suvaitsemattomuus (1916), Ben Hur (1926), Cleopatra (1934), ja ennen kaikkea Cecil B. DeMillen eeppinen remake Kymmenestä käskystä (1956). Todellakin, Jesse Lasky Jr. , The Ten Commandmentsin toinen käsikirjoittaja, kuvaili, kuinka ohjaaja tavallisesti levitti Alma-Tadema-maalausten vedoksia ilmaistakseen lavastussuunnittelijoilleen haluamansa ilmeen. Oscar-palkitun roomalaisen eepos Gladiator suunnittelijat käyttivät Alma-Tademan maalauksia keskeisenä inspiraation lähteenä. Alma-Tademan maalaukset olivat myös inspiraationa Cair Paravelin linnan sisustukseen vuoden 2005 elokuvassa The Chronicles of Narnian: The Lion, the Witch and the Wardrobe . Ei siis mikään turha jäbä!
ellauri294.html on line 403: Kavallan kaupunki on (oli) Makedonian röökiteollisuuden keskus, "The Mecca of Tobacco". Tupakkatyöläiset ovat (olivat) kovia kommunisteja. Egyptin pashan Mehmed Alin (s. 1769 Kavala) razastajapazas vlta 1934 otettiin pressuista vasta 1949. Muslimeille oltiin kauhu kaunaisia, vaikka Mehmed oli vain vaatimaton tupakkakauppias. Pyhä Nikolaos eli joulupukki on (oli) panttilainaajien suojelija. Ei ihme että Paavalille rakennettu kirkko omistettin uudelleen Santalle.
ellauri294.html on line 433: Carl AP Ruckin mukaan yksijalkaisten olemassaolo Intiassa viittaa vedätyxeen Aja Ekapad ("Not-born Single-foot"), joka on soma epiteetti. Koska Soma on kasvitieteellinen jumaluus, yksi jalka edustaisi entheogeenisen (psykedeelisen) terskalakkisen sienen vartta. Egon hajoamista kuvataan usein psykedeelisen kokemuksen avainpiirteeksi. Neologismin entheogeeni loi vuonna 1979 ryhmä sekakäyttäjiä etnobotanisteja ja mytologian tutkijoita vastakohtana samojen huumeiden virkistyskäytölle. Se tulee englannin sanasta "innostusjuuri."
ellauri294.html on line 603: Time Out kutsui elokuvaa "järisyttävän kirjaimelliseksi ja mielikuvituksettomaksi versioksi David Rookin romaanista"; Radio Times antoi sille kaksi tähteä viidestä ja kutsui sitä "työläismäiseksi sovitukseksi" ja lisäsi: "Porter ja Rachel Roberts hylkäävät itsensä asianmukaisesti, mutta elokuva tekee lopulta vaikutuksen enemmän villieläinvalokuvastaan kuin dramaattisesta kiinnostuksestaan."
ellauri294.html on line 621: Kun hänen yhteistyönsä Spielbergin kanssa päättyi, Bluth alkoi suunnitella uutta elokuvaa nimeltä The Little Blue Whale käsikirjoittaja Robert Townen kanssa.. Suunniteltu elokuva kertoi pienestä tytöstä ja hänen eläinystävistään, jotka yrittävät suojella pientä valasta pahoilta valaanpyytäjiltä.
ellauri294.html on line 633: Etätyö, globaalit työnantajat, mahdollisuus suureen palkkaan
ellauri294.html on line 634: USA Job from Home | Työtehtävä: Etsi mainoksia netistä.
ellauri294.html on line 661: Myöhemmin Meadin työ resonoi sukupolven kanssa, joka yritti päästä toimeen kahden maailmansodan jälkeisen elämän kanssa. Yhdysvallat ei voisi olla saari itselleen. Globalisaatio oli vallannut maan ja tuonut mukanaan lukemattomia uskonnollisia, poliittisia ja sosiaalisia ideoita. Jännitteet vanhan ja uuden välillä ilmenivät erilaisina yhteiskunnallisina levottomuuksina, kuten naisten vapauttamisessa, kansalaisoikeusliikkeessä ja sodanvastaisissa mielenosoituksissa. Mutta toisin kuin monet hänen sukupolvensa, Mead otti vastaan tulevat muutokset.
ellauri294.html on line 699: Varhainen uskonnollinen ilmaisu Chautauquassa oli yleensä yleisluonteista, verrattavissa myöhempään Moral Re-Armament -liikkeeseen. 1900-luvun ensimmäisellä puoliskolla fundamentalismista pidettiin yhä enemmän Chautauquan saarnoja ja luentoja. Mutta Chautauquajen suuri määrä sekä keskusvallan puuttuminen tarkoitti sitä, että uskonnolliset mallit vaihtelivat suuresti heidän välillään. Jotkut olivat niin uskonnollisesti suuntautuneita, että ne olivat lähinnä kirkon leirejä, kun taas maallisempi Chautauquas muistutti kesäkoulua ja kilpaili vaudevillen kanssa teattereissa ja sirkustelttaesityksessä eläinnäytteillään ja trapetsillaan akrobaatit.
ellauri297.html on line 48: Founder, Ammi Ruhama Community Christian Union. Living History Interpretor. Baker. Milford Baby and Toddler Group Organizer. Bada Bing Pizza Chef. Sunnymead Residential Home Kitchen Assistant. Be Life Cafe and Marketplace Operations Personnel. Summit Christian Academy Steward. I vacuum the hallways, library, music room and preschool room. I clean the bathrooms and mop the gym/cafeteria floor. I also maintain the general premises. Dan the Handy Man. Do you need handy work done around your house, but don't want to have to call in the big guys with the big price? My name is Daniel Bacon and I am an experienced handy man living right here in Clarks Summit. If you need your lawn cut, bushes trimmed, garden weeded, fence painted / stained or just about any other job done, then call me at 570-585-9595 or email me at contactdanielbacon@gmail.com and we'll set up a time for me to come and see if I am the right man for the job. Wait! let me…Show more... (Ouch!) I emptied the front cash register as well as filling in as a sandwich maker. I created schedules and activities for the campers and staff to participate in. I also led worship during the evenings. Student janitor.
ellauri297.html on line 80: Vuosina 755-715 eKr. (painotus on 750 eKr. tietämissä). Paikkana on pohjoinen Israel, jonka tuhouduttua 006 Hoosean salainen tehtävä jatkui eteläisessä Juudassa. Israelin kuninkaana oli Jerobeam II (Juudassa Ussia ja jotain... Ahas se oli Hiskia). Ruotiukko Hiski Piskinen. 2pa pientä piskiä juo kahmaloittain viskiä. Voi Jeesus kyllä teille tuli paljon tiskiä. Ei mitään, mä tykkään tiskata. Kiva että maistui.
ellauri297.html on line 85: Yhteiskunnallisesti Israel eli Jerobeam II:n aikana voimakkainta ja vahvinta talouskasvun aikaa sitten Daavidin ja Salomonin. Valtakunta oli laajentunut uudelleen "suurvallaksi" ja osa kansasta vaurastui huomattavasti. Silti Israelin romahtamiseen ja tuhoon oli aikaa enää vain 40 vuotta! Tilanne muuttuikin heti Sunbeam Imp II:n jälkeen. Israelia hallitsi enää muutama hyvin lyhytaikainen kuningas. Maa oli sisäisesti levoton ja ulkopuolelta kasvoi voimistuvan Assyrian paine. Assyria hyökkäsikin kolmesti Israeliin: 1. verorasitus, 2. varakkaampi osa porukoista pakkosiirtolaisuuteen ja 3. Israelin tuho ja kaikki pakkosiirtolaisuuteen.
ellauri297.html on line 187: 1 Herran sana, joka tuli Hoosealle, Beerin pojalle, Juudan kuningasten Ussian, Milu-tam-tamin, Aahaan ja Hiskian päivinä ja Israelin kuninkaan Jerobeamin, Jooaan pojan, päivinä. 2 Kun Herra alkoi Hoosealle puhua, sanoi Herra Hoosealle:
ellauri297.html on line 472: The Holy Post Podcastin jaksossa 517 toistuva juontaja Kaitlyn Scheiss haastoi kristillisen yhteisön kirjoittamaan ihmisten kukoistamisesta ja siitä, miten se vaikuttaa tapaamme elää yhteisössä. Harkitsin tätä haastetta ja olen päättänyt hyväksyä ja laajentaa ajatusta ihmisen kukoistuksen tavoittelusta pidemmälle kuin uskon tällä hetkellä tapahtuvan. Ensin on välttämätöntä tunnistaa ero abstraktin kukoistuksen tavoittelun ja kukoistavan ihmisen tavoittelun välillä. Onko kaiken luotujen asioiden abstrakti kukoistaminen kristinuskon riittävä ja johdonmukainen ideologinen päämäärä? Uskon, että se on varmasti osa sitä; kenties sivutuote ansaitsevalle lopputavoitteelle. Ihminen kukoistaa objektiivisesti tietyissä rakkauden ja yhteisön ympäristöissä, joiden tiedämme voivan ja on luotu yksitellen ja jopa pienessä yhteisössä, kuten perheyksikössä, mutta miten abstrakti kukoistuksen tavoittelu mittakaavassa? Tässä johdannossa tarkastelemme ihmisen kukoistamista sielujen välisen viestinnän ylläpidon sivutuotteena.
ellauri297.html on line 475: Ihmisen kukoistaminen on objektiivinen päätavoite. Tai no, jumalan kukoistaminen, mutta sehän menee ilman sanomista. Jokainen haluaa kukoistaa omalla tavallaan, ja viime kädessä olemme kaikki samaa mieltä siitä, miltä kukoistaminen näyttää, esim Kardashianin porukat. Kun tarkastelemme ihmisen kukoistamisen abstraktia tavoitetta, emme kuitenkaan ajattele, että yksilöllistä kukoistustani suurempia tavoitteita on, vaikka se myötävaikuttaisi myös laajemman yhteisön ns. kukoistukseen. Tulemme näkemään, että tällainen kukoistaminen tapahtuu aina oman ihmisyytemme ja yhteisön vähiten arvostettujen inhimillisyyden kustannuksella. Mahdollisuuden kukoistaa tai kommunikoida välillä kommunikoin paljon mieluummin. Todellakin, tämä on esimerkki, jonka saimme Kristuksessa. Esimerkki osoittaa, että tällä keinolla pääsee vielä mahtavammin kukoistamaan loppupeleissä. Kannattaa siis tarkastella koko pelin strategiaa eikä tilannekohtaisia taktiikoita.
ellauri297.html on line 561: Paskat tää on mitään postmodernismia, tää ei ole mikään romaani ollenkaan, vaan oikeistorasistinen paasaus. Patti on niin xenofobi ettei tahdo tavata sansibarilaisen nainutta "Lissua" ja sen mustaa miestä. Musta mies! Ne hakkaavat valkoiset rytmileikissä.
ellauri297.html on line 583: – För att jag är så obekant med det.
ellauri297.html on line 617:
Shaw gynofobina
ellauri299.html on line 50: Uusimman oikeistoaallon jäljissä Hoblasta on tullut täysin lukukelvoton. Nytkun se on myyty Ruåzin juutalaisille voisi olla aika sanoa sille hyvästit. Alkaa tuntua että albumi 300 saattaa olla "tällä erää" viimeinen. Termiittiapinoiden hullutuxet ei enää naurata, ne on kaikki nähty ja naurut naurettu.
ellauri299.html on line 62: Sarja on saanut inspiraationsa pääasiassa Robert Browningin runosta " Childe Roland to the Dark Tower Came ", jonka koko teksti sisällytettiin viimeisen osan liitteeseen. Siitä mulla on vanhastaan paasaus ja suolennoskin albumissa 198.
ellauri299.html on line 144: Julio Romero: Constantemente esta el mensaje de que los indigentes son todos víctimas de la sociedad. El caso que intenta relacionar la muerte de Lontane Burton y sus hijos con la negligencia del despacho es hasta forzado. Por todos los medios intentan hacer que sientas culpa y pena por los indigentes y ni siquiera hay un punto de discusión sobre el tema, es todo muy parcialista.
ellauri299.html on line 224: Rasismista xenofobiaan. Monty Pythonin skezi Execution on Russia ei ollut järin vizikäs. Mikään ei ole muuttunut länkkärien asenteissa viimeisen sadan vuoden aikana. Ilta-pulut kilpailevat lööpeillä joiden aiheet ovat Putinin tappio ja vanhusten sairaudet. Kolmantena pääministeri Urpon edistyminen Suomen hyvän maineen pilaajana. Se on ollut ällistyttävän nopeaa.
ellauri299.html on line 228: - Kuinka kauan aiot olla yleinen etulakimies? kysyi katulakimiehen isobroidi Warner Bros. Tää hahmo on nyysitty Belowin Salelta. - Olen juuri alkanut. En todellakaan ollut ajatellut asiaa loppuun. Miksi? - Kuinka kauan voit tehdä työtä ilmatteexi? - Niin kauan kuin voin selviytyä hengissä. - Joten hengissäpysyminen on standardi? - Toistaiseksi. Mikä on sinun standardisi? Se oli naurettava kysymys jenkkilakimieheltä toiselle. - Raha. kuinka paljon tienaan; kuinka paljon kulutan; kuinka paljon voin kätkeä jonnekin ja katsella sen kasvavan niin, että jonain päivänä minulla on paskaruukku täynnä sitä, eikä minun tarvitse huolehtia mistään.
ellauri299.html on line 331: Rubin syntyi Cincinnatissa, Ohiossa, kotiäiti Estherin (Katzin) ja rekkakuski Robert Rubinin pojalle, josta tuli myöhemmin Teamsters -liiton virkamies. Hän opiskeli Oberlin Collegessa ja heprealaisessa yliopistossa Jerusalemissa ja valmistui myöhemmin Cincinnatin yliopistosta saaden historian tutkinnon. Rubin opiskeli Kalifornian yliopistossa Berkeleyssä vuonna 1964, mutta keskeytti opinnot keskittyäkseen sosiaaliseen aktivismiin.
ellauri299.html on line 345: TV-aika menee niille, joilla on eniten rohkeutta ja mielikuvitusta. En koskaan ymmärtänyt radikaalia, joka tulee televisioon puvussa ja kravatissa. Sammuta ääni ja hän voi olla pormestari! Sanat voivat olla radikaaleja, mutta televisio on sanaton väline! Tapa ymmärtää televisiota on sulkea ääni. Kukaan ei muista kuulemiaan sanoja; mieli on tekninen elokuva kuvista, ei sanoista. En ole koskaan nähnyt mielenosoituksen "huonoa" uutisointia. Ei ole väliä, mitä he sanovat meistä. Kuva on tarina. Väline on viesti. Subjektit, objektit ja kieltosanat ovat turhia. Pääasia on fantasia. Apina on kuvitteleva eläin, ja toivova.
ellauri299.html on line 348: Lokakuussa 1967 David Dellinger Vietnamin sodan lopettamisesta kansallisesta mobilisaatiokomiteasta pyysi Rubinia auttamaan mobilisoimaan ja ohjaamaan marssia Pentagonissa. Mielenosoittajat kokoontuivat Lincoln Memorialille, kun Dellinger ja tohtori Benjamin Spock (vauvatohtori, ei se puikkokorva) pitivät puheita joukolle ihmisiä.
ellauri299.html on line 360: Chicagon poliisimellakassa 1968 mätkittiin jo 1500 tyyppiä. Chicagon seizikon oikeudenkäynnistä tuli puhdasta puskafarssia. Huolimatta kaatumisvaarasta Rubin poltti marihuanaa ennen oikeudenkäyntiä. "Minua kivitettiin paljon oikeudenkäynnissä, koska se oli niin täydellistä teatteria – historian eturivin istuin – ja marihuana tehostaa jokaista kokemusta." Hölmö tuomari Hoffman lisäsi vauhtia spektaakkeliin. Tuomari Hoffman määräsi muun muassa, että Black Panther -johtaja Bobby Seale sidotaan, sidotaan ja ketjutetaan tuoliinsa huomattavan osan oikeudenkäynnistä. Olihan se hauskaa aikansa, mutta pitkässä juoxussa yrittäjyys tuo parempaa katetta, tuumi Jerry viisastuttuaan ja rupesi juppiexi. Teit'isäin astumaan.
ellauri299.html on line 362: Patti laittaa yhtä rumasuisesti Vietnamin sodan vastustajia kuin puolalainen nobelisti Milosz maanmiehiä. Siniristilipun kanssa marssivat kansalliset ylioppilaat saa kiitosta. Patti peukuttaa sotaa koska siinä tulee väpelönkin elämästä merkityxellistä. Sota ja romaani, ainoat transkendenssit! Harmi että Väpi ehti jo kirjoittaa Sotaromaanin. Hyvä oli että Patin lento jäi lyhyexi kuin kanalta.
ellauri299.html on line 412: Descartes ja Hobbes ei olleet kavereita vaikka Mersenne yritti. Anglosaxi monisti ja dualisti pikkukonna, huonot lähtötelineet.
ellauri299.html on line 414: Thomas Hobbes (1588–1679), whose current reputation rests largely on his political philosophy, was a thinker with wide-ranging interests. In philosophy, he defended a range of materialist, nominalist, and empiricist views against Cartesian and Aristotelian alternatives.
ellauri299.html on line 415: Descartes suggested that Hobbes was more accomplished in moral philosophy than elsewhere, but also that he had wicked views there (Descartes 1643, 3.230-1). Descartes also worried that Hobbes was "aiming to make his reputation at my expense, and by devious means" (Descartes 1641b, 100).
ellauri299.html on line 495: Jöns lukee haikeana Hobbesista, mm. Abraham Cowleyn (1618–1667) siitä kirjoittamaa oodia. Cowleysta tuli vahingossa mieleen sata vuotta myöhäisempi Cowper, William, 1731-1800 [ku:pö] ja sen kuuluisa hymni "Taas verilähde sydämen".
ellauri299.html on line 499: Cowleyn Hobbes-hehkutuxen loppunoususta tuli mieleen Bob Dylanin styge Forever young, jonka laulaa kauniimmin sen vanha flamma Joan Baez. Jälkikäteen ajatellen ei ole ihmekään että ne tykkäsivät jonkin aikaa toisistaan, niillä on vähän samanmalliset näädännnäköiset pärstävärkit.
ellauri299.html on line 501:
ellauri299.html on line 506: Jesse Byron Dylan (born January 6, 1966) is an American film director and production executive. He is the founder of the media production company Wondros and Lybba, a non-profit organization. He is also a member of the Council on Foreign Relations and TED. He is the son of musician Bob Dylan and former model Sara Lownds and brother of singer-songwriter Jakob Dylan. Dylan is separated from Susan Traylor, with whom he has a son and a daughter. Jesse on kohtuullisen pyylevä.
ellauri299.html on line 538: A 2015 study by the Vera Institute of Justice contends that jails in the U.S. have become "massive warehouses" of the impoverished since the 1980s. Scholars assert that the transformation of the already anemic U.S. welfare state to a post-welfare punitive state, along with neoliberal structural adjustment policies, the globalization of the U.S. economy and the dominance of global financial institutions, have created more extreme forms of "destitute poverty" in the U.S. which must be contained by expanding the criminal justice system and the carceral state into every aspect of the lives of the poor, which, according to Reuben Jonathan Miller and Emily Shayman, has resulted in "transforming what it means to be poor in America."
ellauri299.html on line 548: Poverty may be fueling the Obesity epidemic, with the poorest states, counties and neighborhoods having the highest death rates from heart disease, stroke, diabetes and other diseases related to obesity. For every $10,000 poorer a neighborhood is, the death rate of heart disease increases by 10%.
ellauri299.html on line 550: The working poor fare even worse than the lazy shiftless ones. Two even three jubs are not enough to keep them out of poverty. Many low-wage service sector jobs require a great deal of customer service work. Although not all customer service jobs (e.g. litigation laywers) are low-wage or low-status, many of them are. Some argue [who? Marx and Engels maybe?] that the low status nature of some jobs can have negative psychological effects on workers, but others argue that low status workers come up with coping mechanisms that allow them to maintain a strong sense of self-worth.
ellauri299.html on line 552: One coping mechanism is called boundary work, which happens when one group of people valorize their own social position by comparing themselves to another group, who they perceive to be still inferior in some way. For example, Newman (1999) found that fast food workers in New York City cope with the low-status nature of their job by comparing themselves to the unemployed, who they perceive to be even lower-status than themselves.
ellauri299.html on line 615: Ranskalainen filosofi ja lääkäri Julien Offray de La Mettrie julkaisi 1700-luvun puolivälissä teoksen Man a Machine ( L'homme Machine ) Thomas Hobbesin deterministiseen perinteeseen kuuluvan materialistisen filosofian suuren teoksen. Tässä teoksessa de la Mettrie laajensi Descartesin ja Hobbesin väitettä, jonka mukaan eläimet ovat pelkkiä automaatteja tai koneita ihmisille, kieltäen eläimiltä sielun aineesta erillisenä substanssina. Ja samalla tavalla, ehkä ihminen itse on vain kone.
ellauri300.html on line 82: När konstnären Jacob Anfang berättar att han är impotent har fru Tamar inget val utom att gifta sig med Boris Makaber. Då är det en god idé att göra lite mera pengar i miljonaffärer.
ellauri300.html on line 327: In 2018, Marcin Wodziński estimated that the Chabad movement accounted for 13% of the global Hasidic population. The total number of Chabad households is estimated to be between 16,000 and 17,000. The number of those who sporadically or regularly attend Chabad events is far larger; in 2005 the Jerusalem Center for Public Affairs reported that up to one million Jews attend Chabad services at least once a year. In a 2020 study, the Pew Research Center found that 16% of American Jews attend Chabad services regularly or semi-regularly.
ellauri300.html on line 403: Dr Halperin försäkrade att han aldrig i hela sitt liv hade ätit så god gefillte fisch. Och soppan spred sig likt ett livselixir i venerna, klimparna smakade paradisiskt. Den traditionella sötningen av de bittra örterna gjorde dem obeskrivligt läckra, för Reytze hade använt sig av en blandning av nötter i äpplen, vin och en hemlig krydda som retade luktsinnet. Alla innehåller flavonoider som är bra för minnet.
ellauri300.html on line 414: Om det finns en värld efter denna vill jag se den, och om den inte finns är livet värdelöst i alla fall. Då är människan ingenting annat än en mikrob. Då finns det verkligen ingen anledning att lida. Är vi förbjudna att ta livet av oss? Kommer Gud att straffa oss? Låt honom straffa oss! Han straffar oss tillräckligt som det är. Jag skall döda mig men med så lite lidande som möjligt. Försynen gjorde ingenting att ingripa när 6 miljoner judar grillades. Alla skulle sluta så här. Gatan var full av framtida lik. Döden glömmer ingen.
ellauri300.html on line 589: In October 2022, McLean called Kanye West an 'attention-seeking fool' over his antisemitic rants. The "American Pie" singer who briefly lived in Israel said he stands with his Jewish friends. McLean lived in Israel on-and-off from 1978-1982 and he “grew to love the country and the people. Living there changed my life forever.”
ellauri300.html on line 600: Vid Thirty-fourth Street gick Luria in i en cafeteria. Jag tar en kopp kaffe. Det kan ju aldrig skada. Boskap äter också innan de slaktas. Magen gör vad den är avsedd för: den smälter maten. Detta var det mest absurda av allt - -varje organ gjorde vad det var avsett för: magen smälte maten, hjärnan tänkte. Efter döden började en helt ny omgång aktiviteter. Mikroberna åt upp allt; protonerna, neutronerna, elektronerna fortsatte sitt ändlösa virvlande och cirklande. Atomerna hade förmodligen ingen aning om att deras herre (ba'al) hade dött eller begått självmord. Och på vilket sätt kunde en människa rimligen betraktas som deras ägare? För dem var det likgiltigt var de bodde-i människor, i moss, i dynga. De hade sina egna atomlagar att ta hänsyn till och betraktade hela individualitetsbegreppet som näst intill löjlig. Men vilket syfte tjänade detta? Av vilket skäl roterade den här planeten? Hur länge skulle den fortsätta att rotera kring sin axel och cirkla kring solen? Det måste finnas en mening någonstans.
ellauri300.html on line 647: Conduct for the congregants (Titus 2:1-10, 3:1-11). Older women are encouraged to avoid slander or excessive drinking and must encourage younger women to be good wives and mothers. Slaves are exhorted to be trustworthy and obedient. The church as a whole is exhorted to submit to authorities and avoid fighting and “foolish discussions” (Titus 3:9).
ellauri300.html on line 737: Det var den 16 oktober 1946. Julius Streicher, som i praktiken hade dömts till döden för att ha gett ut den antisemitiska tidningen Der Stürmer, var en av de tio ledande nationalsocialister som denna dag skulle hängas i Nürnberg. När de amerikanska vakterna eskorterade honom till galgen hade Joachim von Ribbentrop, Wilhelm Keitel, Alfred Rosenberg, Hans Frank och Wilhelm Frick redan lämnat den jordiska tillvaron. Wilhelm Frick hade ropat ”länge leve det eviga Tyskland!” innan falluckan öppnats under honom och nu när det var Streichers tur att yttra sina sista ord ropade han ”Heil Hitler!” och sedan ”Detta är en glädjerik judisk fest, det är min purimfest!” Med den dödsdömdes bittra ironi uppmärksammade han på detta sätt sambandet mellan de tio män som hängdes denna dag och Hamans tio söner som, enligt Bibeln, hängdes en gång för länge sedan i det persiska rikets huvudstad Shushan och vilket judarna, under en fest en gång om året, firar än idag.
ellauri300.html on line 792: Dessa apokalyptiska föreställningar och förväntningar är inte begränsade till fanatiska judiska sionister utan delas även av kristna. ”Pånyttfödda” kristna som USA:s president George Bush och likasinnade tycks på samma sätt som sionisterna längta efter den dag då det messianska världsherraväldet skall upprättas och Moshiach skall styra detta globala sionistiska tyranni med ”järnspira”.
ellauri300.html on line 817: The word na‘ar, which is often rendered as children/boys, means boy. The Hebrew adjective, qatan, means small. Thus we can say it’s highly unlikely the people who mocked Elisha were “little children” or “small boys.” It’s much more probable that these were young men and quite possibly they were just servants (maybe blacks?).
ellauri300.html on line 819: Remember Jeroboam founded Dan (in the north) and Bethel (in the south) as his kingdom’s two alternatives to Jerusalem (1 Kings 12:25-33). He set up golden calves at these sites, ordained non-Aaronic priests, changed the time of the festivals, and Ba'al worship soon reigned supreme.
ellauri300.html on line 849: At the hour of the afternoon sacrifice the prophet Elijah approached the altar and prayed, “O Lord, the God of Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob, prove now that you are the God of Israel and that I am your servant and have done all this at your command.
ellauri300.html on line 899: Kirous on vastakohta sanalle siunaus tai suositus (vrt.1. Moos. 27:11, 12). Pääpaino on siunatun tilan tai oikeutetun aseman poissaolossa, käänteessä tai poistamisessa, joka tuo Jumalan suojelun, huolenpidon ja siunauksen. Periaate on hyvin yksinkertainen: ilman Jumalan siunattua pelastusta ja suojelusta olemme kaikki kirottuja. Sillä hetkellä, kun Jumala poisti suojamuurin Jobilta, Saatana hyökkäsi hänen kimppuunsa ja aiheutti tuhon Jobin elämässä. Elisa poisti palomuurin lapsilta ja heti kävi huonosti.
ellauri300.html on line 923: So Elisha, as a prophet, saw their hardened and rebellious condition, unresponsive to correction. In the name of the Lord (i.e. by His authority) Elisha simply turned them over to the Lord and to their own devices, which had the effect of removing them from even the common protection of God. He probably said something like, “may God deal with you according to what you deserve,” or “may you be cursed for your sins of rebellion.” This would demonstrate to the city and to people all around a vital truth: without the Lord there is no protection and that blasphemy of God’s servants and His Word in order to hinder God’s message is serious busin
ellauri301.html on line 76: Nuori Wallander on yhtä pseudo svedu kuin kiinalaisvalmisteinen Electrolux pesukone, johon bränditarra lyödään tehtaan ovella. Toisesta ovesta menee ulos Siemensit ja kolmannesta Whirlpoolit. Tää on globalisaatiota, jota beady eye Kurt puolustaa puhtain tuliasein Malmön kaduilla. Ense candido causa pro candida, valkoisen asian puolesta valkoisella miekalla, venelakki päässä kuin Carl Gustav Emil Mannerheim. Paizi että näyttää hyvältä nakukuvissa, nuori Kurt on lainvalvonnan nero kuten kolleegansa DI Lewis. Sitäpaizi ne on hienoja ihmisiä paizi remmissä myös siviilissä. Sarjan token ruozalaiset näyttää maansa myyneiltä solkatessaan kökköenkkua, ja hyvästä syystä, senhän ne on tehneetkin.
ellauri301.html on line 80: Henning Georg Mankell (efternamnet uttalas med betoning på första stavelsen), född 3 februari 1948 i Sankt Görans församling i Stockholm, död 5 oktober 2015 på Särö i Släps församling, Hallands län, var en svensk författare och dramatiker. Han var mest känd för sina deckarromaner med kriminalkommissarie Kurt Wallander i huvudrollen. Hans böcker har sålts i över 40 miljoner exemplar.
ellauri301.html on line 98: He first appeared when Sweden was in the middle of a precipitate retreat to laissez-faire capitalism from the optimistic social democracy of the 1960s and 70s, so that the corruption and decay of the hero found an echo in the corruption and decay of the society around him. Sweden had become a much more racist country than it had seemed in the 60s, when there were hardly any immigrants from outside Scandinavia there. All the racist hate had been spent on the Finns, who nobody could distinguish from the locals until they opened their mouths. Which they rarely did.
ellauri301.html on line 100: The extraordinary global success of Swedish and later Norwegian crime fiction as a form of escapist literature for men had several causes. One is that police work is one of the last wholly unionised jobs in the world, so that our hero will never be sacked for anything other than gross misconduct – of which he, being the hero, is never really guilty. In the optimistic 60s, James Bond was distinguished from other middle-aged men by his licence to kill but by the 90s the policeman as a fantasy hero had a licence to keep his job. In the economic whirlwind of globalisation, this was something that a lot of frustrated middle-aged men could only dream of.
ellauri301.html on line 102: There is little nihilism in Swedish noir: good and bad are always clearly distinguished all the way through to the cartoonish culmination of the genre in Stieg Larsson’s trilogy about Lisbeth Salander. The only problem for Stieg´s heroes is that good no longer plays in the same team with the Swedish state. Evil is firmly located in reassuringly wicked villains. Everything is privatized just like in Britain and America. All is well. (These sharp observations courtesy of The Guardian.)
ellauri301.html on line 119: The third book in the series, Den vita lejoninnan, ‘The White Lioness’, was the first translated into English, helping to turn Wallander into an international sensation and triggering the global sensation of Scandinavian noir.
ellauri301.html on line 174: Mankeli kirjoitti ensimmäisen Wallander-dekkarinsa Kasvoton kuolema vuonna 1991 Ruotsiin paluunsa jälkeen oltuaan normaalia pidempään Afrikassa. Hänen mielestään rasismi ja ksenofobia olivat lisääntyneet Ruotsissa, ja hän päätti kartoittaa ilmiötä rikosromaanin muodossa. Tästä alkoi Wallander-kirjasarja, joka ei aluksi ollut suuri menestys. Wallander-kirjat menivät kuitenkin Ruotsissa paremmin kaupaksi kuin Mankelin aiemmat teokset. Suuri kansainvälinen läpimurto tapahtui vuonna 1998, ja käännösten myötä Mankelista tuli vähitellen miljonääri. Wallenberg sr ei sentään ole mikään supermies, mitä vikaa näyttää vähän olevan juniorissa.
ellauri301.html on line 205: Aivan erityisesti mua vituttaa klisheisissä kirjoissa noi dialogin väliin heitetyt show don´t tell tyyppiset visualisoivat välilauseet kuten: X sytytti röökin ja jatkoi, Y hörppäsi pahvisesta kahvimukista ja vastasi, van Heerde fuktade läpparna innan han började tala. Se on niin klisheistä että tekee ikenistä pahaa. Kuin 70-luvun sarjan mainoskatkot tai Hoblan annonssisivut vanhoille kääkille: "har ni lemproblem? kliar eran torra vagina?"
ellauri301.html on line 228: Krotoa was born in 1643 as a member of the !Uriǁ’aeǀona (Strandlopers) people, and the niece of Autshumao, a Khoi chieftain and trader. At the age of twelve, she was taken to work in the household of Jan van Riebeeck, the first governor of the Cape colony. As a teenager, she learned Dutch and Portuguese and, like her uncle, worked as an interpreter for the Dutch who wanted to trade goods for cattle. "!Oroǀõas" received goods such as tobacco, brandy, bread, beads, copper and iron for her services. In exchange, when she visited her family her Dutch masters expected her to return with cattle, horses, seed pearls, amber, tusks, and hides. Unlike her uncle, however, who just Spike hottentot, "!Oroǀõas" was able to obtain a higher position within the Dutch hierarchy as she additionally served as a trading agent, ambassador for a high ranking chief and peace negotiator in time of war. Her story exemplifies the initial dependency of the Dutch newcomers on the natives, who were able to provide reasonably reliable information about the local inhabitants.
ellauri301.html on line 238: On 3 May 1662 she was baptized by a visiting person, minister Petrus Sibelius, in the church inside the Fort de Goede Hoop. The witnesses were Roelof de Man and Pieter van der Stael. On 26 April 1664 she married a Danish surgeon by the name of Peter Havgard, whom the Dutch called Pieter van Meerhof. She was thereafter known as Eva van Meerhof (See Geni/MyHeritage).[clarification needed] She was the first Khoikoi to marry according to Christian customs. There was a little party in the house of Zacharias Wagenaer. In May 1665, they left to the Cape and went to Robben Island, where van Meerhof was appointed superintendent. The family briefly returned to the mainland in 1666 after the birth of Eva´s third child, in order to baptise the baby. Van Meerhof was murdered in Madagascar on 27 February 1668 on an expedition. After the death of her husband Pieter Van Meerhof came the appointment of a new governor, Zacharias Wagenaer. Unlike the governor before him, he held extremely negative views toward the Khoi people, and because at this point the Dutch settlement was secure, he didn´t find a need for Eva as a translator anymore.
ellauri301.html on line 240: She returned to the mainland on 30 September 1668 with her three children. Suffering from alcoholism, she left the Castle in the settlement to be with her family in their kraals. In February 1669 she was imprisoned unjustly for immoral behavior at the Castle and then banished to Robben Island. This was likely the result of the strict anti-alcohol laws the VOC had passed to govern the local population after they introduced higher proof European liquors. One of Van Riebeeck´s nieces, Elizabeth Van Opdorp, adopted Krotoa´s children after she was banished. She returned to the mainland on many occasions, only to find herself once more banished to Robben Island. In May 1673 she was allowed to baptise a child on the mainland. Three of her children survived. She died on 29 July 1674 in the Cape and was buried on 30 September 1674 in the Castle in the Fort. However, roughly a hundred years later, her bones were removed to an unmarked grave.
ellauri301.html on line 248: Born in Johannesburg to an influential Afrikaner family, de Klerk studied at Potchefstroom University before pursuing a career in law. Joining the NP, to which he had family ties, he was elected to parliament and sat in the white-minority government of P. W. Botha, holding a succession of ministerial posts. As a minister, he supported and enforced apartheid, a system of racial segregation that privileged white South Africans. After Botha resigned in 1989, de Klerk replaced him, first as leader of the NP and then as State President. Although observers expected him to continue Botha´s defence of apartheid, de Klerk decided to end the policy. He was aware that growing ethnic animosity and violence was leading South Africa into a racial civil war.
ellauri301.html on line 259: De Klerk was a controversial figure among many sections of South African society, all for different reasons. He received many awards, including the Nobel Peace Prize for dismantling apartheid and bringing universal suffrage to South Africa. Conversely, he received criticism from anti-apartheid activists for offering only a qualified apology for apartheid, and for ignoring the human rights abuses by state security forces. He was also condemned by South Africa´s Afrikaner nationalists, who contended that by abandoning apartheid, he betrayed the interests of the country´s Afrikaner minority. South Africa´s Conservative Party came to regard him as its most hated adversary.
ellauri301.html on line 334: - Boerewors, lamb chops, T-bone steaks, chicken “flatties”, snoek, kabeljou(cob), sosaties, kebabs
ellauri301.html on line 352: There was a media campaign in 2005 that sought to have the day recognized as National Braai Day, to acknowledge the backyard barbeque tradition, but the holiday is still officially recognized as Heritage Day. Fair enough, Braai is a word in one of the tribal languages (N:o 3 above), while Heritage is a global word.
ellauri301.html on line 364: Lähde: Jacobsen, Kirsten: Mankell. Alkuteos: Mankell om Mankell, 2011. Suom. Päivi Kivelä. Otava 2012. ISBN 978-951-26474-3 (sid.) Ilm. 9/2012. Kansikuva.
ellauri301.html on line 398: Rajavartija Tobiasson-Svartskalle haluaisi hallita niin tunteensa kuin meren, jonka syvyyksiä hän luotaa, mutta oman sielunsa syvyyksiä hän ei tunne vitun vertaa.
ellauri301.html on line 423: Dina heliga böcker talar hela tiden om den fria viljan. Men jag ska säja dig att en människa har lika lite fri vilja som en kvalster eller en sten. Vi är maskiner, Borukh, blinda roboter. Naturen ger oss judar inga privilegier. Inte åt kristna heller.
ellauri301.html on line 449: Snart blottas ollonet tänkte Grein. Nej, hos judar ät det blottat hela tiden. Vad synd. Det känns fint när det blottas ur förskinnet som rullar ner kring ollonets hals lik Steve Jobs's poloskjorta.
ellauri301.html on line 451: obs">Steven Paul “Steve” Jobs – who is currently being portrayed by Ashton Kutcher in the biopic “Jobs” — was the biological child of a Syrian-born father and a Swiss-American Catholic mother who gave him up for adoption at birth.
ellauri301.html on line 452: I bet he was at least a honorary Jew. He had a mancrush on Bob Dylan.
ellauri301.html on line 453: If the value of tikkun olam really means leaving your imprint on the world in a quest to make it a better place for all of us, then Steve Jobs possessed that value a thousand-fold. Tikkun Olam: In Jewish teachings, any activity that improves the world, bringing it closer to the harmonious state for which it was created. Tikkun olam implies that while the world is innately good, its Creator purposely left room for us to improve upon His work.
ellauri302.html on line 105: obel.jpg/440px-David-Kessler_Jennie-Goldstein_Malvina-Lobel.jpg" />
ellauri302.html on line 235: Since the Feast of Weeks was one of the “harvest feasts,” the Jews were commanded to “present an offering of new grain to the Lord” (Leviticus 23:16). This offering was to be “two wave loaves of two-tenths of an ephah” which were made “of fine flour... baked with leaven.” The offerings were to be made of the first fruits of that harvest (Leviticus 23:17). Along with the “wave offerings” they were also to offer seven first-year lambs that were without blemish along with one young bull and two rams. Additional offerings are also prescribed in Leviticus and the other passages that outline how this feast was to be observed. Another important requirement of this feast is that, when the Jews harvested their fields, they were required to leave the corners of the field untouched and not gather “any gleanings” from the harvest as a way of providing for the poor and strangers (Leviticus 23:22).
ellauri302.html on line 249: Shut up, will you? Late at night they have to start telling stories about the dead. No dead people can come here. Our boss has a Holy Scroll upstairs... (A sudden hush.) What's wrong about our trade, I'd like to know? (She leaves her little room and goes into the basement.) Wasn't our mistress in a house like this for fifteen years? Yet she married. And isn't she a respectable God-fearing woman?... Doesn 't she observe all the laws that a Jewish daughter must keep?... And isn't her Rifkele a pure child? And isn't our boss a respectable man? Isn't he generous? Doesn't he give the biggest donations to charity?... And he's had a Holy Scroll written...
ellauri302.html on line 251: Manke, steals from her compartment into the basement. She is half-dressed, with a shawl thrown over her private parts. Her colored stockings are visible, and her hair is in disorder. Her eyes sparkle with wanton cunning. Her face is long, and insolently pretty; she is quite young. A lock of hair falls over her forehead. Her eyes blink as she speaks, and her whole body quivers. She looks about in surprise. What? Nobody here?
ellauri302.html on line 310: Manke, lowering her voice, and whispering into Bifkele' s ear. And then we go to sleep together. Nobody sees, nobody hears. Only you and I. Like this. (Clasps Bifkele tightly to herself.) Do you want to sleep with me tonight like this? Eh?
ellauri302.html on line 318: Manke Wait, Rifkele, wait a second. (Reflects for a moment.) Do you want to go away from here with me? We'll be together days and nights at a time. Your father won't be there, nor your mother... Nobody 'll scold you... or beat you...
ellauri302.html on line 428: Fie! You're out of your head altogether. True, a misfortune has befallen you. May Heaven watch over aU of us. Well? What? Misfortunes happen to plenty of folks. The Lord sends aid and things turn out all right. The important point is to keep your mouth shut. Hear nothing. See nothing. Just wash your hands clean of it and forget it. (To Reizel.) Be careful what you say. Don't let it travel any further, God forbid. Do you hear? (Turns to Yekel, who is staring vacantly into space.) I had a talk with... (Looks around to see whether Reizel is still present. Seeing her, he stops. After a pause he begins anew, more softly, looking at Reizel as a hint for her to leave.) With er, er... (Casts a significant glance at Reizel, who at last understands, and leaves.) I had a talk with the groom's father. I spoke to him between the afternoon and evening prayers, at the synagogue. He's almost ready to talk business. Of course I gave him to understand that the bride doesn't boast a very high pedigree, but I guess another hundred roubles will fix that up, all right. Nowadays, pedigrees don't count as much as they used to. With God's help I'll surely be here this Sabbath, with the groom's father. We'll go down to the Dayon and have him examine the young man in his religious studies... But nobody must get wind of this tale. It might spoil everything. The father comes of a fine family and the son carries a smart head on his shoulders. There, there. Calm yourself. Trust in the Lord and everything will turn out for the best. With God's help I am going home to prepare for the morning prayer. And as soon as the girl returns, notify me. Remember, now. (About to go.)
ellauri302.html on line 474: Reb Ali The truth. The truth. Heaven will help you... Everything will turn out for the best. I'm going to the young man's father directly. He's over at the synagogue and must surely be waiting for me. (Looks around.) Tell your wife to put the house in order in the meantime. And you, prepare the contract, and at once, so that he'll have no time to discover anything amiss and withdraw. Arrange the wedding date and have the bride go at once to her parents-in-law. No idle chatter, remember. Keep silent, so that nobody wiU learn anything about it. (Ready to go.) And cast all this nonsense out of your head. Trust in the Lord and rejoice in His comfort. (At the door.) Tell your wife to tidy up the place. (Leaves.)
ellauri302.html on line 516: Yes, he 'll sit inside there and study the sacred books... I have a virtuous Jewish daughter. (Goes into the room and drags Rifkele out hy force. She is only half dressed, her hair in disorder, one boob sticking out. He points to her.) Your son will marry a virtuous Jewish daughter, I say. She will bear him pure, Jewish children... even as all pious daughters. (To Sarah.) Isn't that so? (Laughing wildly, to the stranger.) Yes, indeed, my friend, — she'll make a pure, pious little mate. My wife will lead her under the wedding canopy... Down into the brothel! Down below! (Pointing to the basement.) Down into the brothel! (Dragging Rifkele hy her hair to the door.) Down into the brothel with you! Down!
ellauri302.html on line 583: Moshe Chaim Luzzatto syntyi vuonna 1707 Padovan juutalaisessa ghetossa Venetsian tasavallassa. Alle 20-vuotiaana hän oli aloittanut 150 laulun säveltämisen Raamatun psalterin mallin mukaisesti. Näissä rinnakkaisuuden lakien mukaisesti laadituissa psalmeissa hän vapautti itsensä kaikista vieraista vaikutuksista ja jäljitteli Raamatun tyyliä niin uskollisesti, että hänen runonsa näyttävät kokonaan raamatullisten sanojen ja ajatusten toistolta. Ne aiheuttivat kuitenkin rabbien kritiikkiä ja olivat yksi syy vainoihin, joille Luzzatto myöhemmin joutui. Rebbe Jacob Poppers erityisesti Frankfort-on-the-Mainista piti anteeksiantamattomana öykkäröintinä yrittää päihittää "Jaakobin Jumalan voideltuja värsyjä".
ellauri302.html on line 666: Eliyahu Ben Moshe Dos Vidas (1518–1587, Hebron) oli 1500-luvun rabbi mytomaanien Palestiinassa. Hän oli ensisijaisesti rabbi Moses ben Jacob Cordoveron (tunnetaan nimellä Muaa Ramasee Ramaseeko Suaa) mutta myös vähän Isaac Lurian opetuslapsi. Dos Vidas tunnetaan Kabbalan ja siantuntemuksestaan. Hän kirjoitti Reshit Chochmahin eli "Viisauden alun", pietistisen teoksen, jota ortodoksiset juutalaiset tutkivat edelleen laajasti. Aivan kuten hänen opettajansa rabbi Moses Cordovero loi eettisen teoksen kabbalististen periaatteiden mukaisesti teoksessaan Tomera Deborah, Rabbi Dos Vidas loi vielä laajemman teoksen henkisestä elämästä hänen kanssaan, nimeltä Reishiluut Chochmeeshshah. Tämäkin magnum opus perustuu suurelta osin Zohariin, mutta heijastaa myös monia perinteisempiä lähteitä. Kirjoittaja asui Safedissa ja Hebronissa ja oli yksi Hebronissa 1500-luvun lopulla ja 1600-luvun alussa asuneista merkittävistä kabbalisteista. Niitä kyllä juoxi siellä laumoittain kuin kylän koiria.
ellauri308.html on line 269: Otto Wilhelm (Ville tai Wille, O. W.) Kuusinen (Neuvostoliitossa ven. Отто Вильгельмович Куусинен, Otto Vilgelmovitš Kuusinen, 4. lokakuuta 1881 Laukaa – 17. toukokuuta 1964 Moskova) oli suomalainen poliitikko, joka loi suuren osan urastaan Neuvostoliitossa. Kuusinen oli Suomen Sosialidemokraattisen Puolueen puheenjohtaja vuosina 1911–1913, Suomen Kommunistisen Puolueen (SKP) pitkäaikainen johtohenkilö ja Terijoen hallituksen (1939–1940) johtaja. Kuusinen kuului myös Kommunistisen internationaalin ja Neuvostoliiton kommunistisen puolueen korkeimpaan johtoon ja on korkeimmalle politiikassa noussut suomalainen, kun Max Jakobsonia ei valittu Yhdistyneiden kansakuntien pääsihteeriksi vuonna 1971. Kuusinen palkittiin Leninin kunniamerkillä viidesti.
ellauri308.html on line 399: "Vaikka suurapinoilla on tyypillisesti kaksi tai kolme erillistä ja toisistaan erillään olevaa juurta, Graecopithecuksen juuret lähentyvät ja ovat osittain fuusioituneet - ominaisuus, joka on tyypillinen nykyajan ihmisille, varhaisille ihmisille ja useille esi-ihmisille, mukaan lukien Ardipithecus ja Australopithecus ", sanoi Jacob Böhme.
ellauri308.html on line 424: Aiemmin länsimaissa ja vielä vuosikymmen sitten Suomessakin ylistetty venäläinen Nobel-kirjailija Aleksandr Solženitsyn (1918–2008) on nykyisin vain Venäjän johdon suosiossa.
ellauri308.html on line 446: Postmoderniin tapaan maailma on parempi, jos se koostuu monista, toisistaan olennaisesti poikkeavista kulttuureista, eikä pyri kulttuuriseen globalisaatioon.
ellauri308.html on line 459: Radek oli oikeastaan Ukrainan juutalainen, syntyi Lembergissä eli Lvovissa eli Lvivissä silloisessa Itävalta-Unkarissa juutalaiseen perheeseen. Hänen alkuperäinen nimensä oli Karol Sobelsohn. Hän otti nimen "Radek" Stefan Żeromskin kirjan romaanihenkilön mukaan.
ellauri308.html on line 465: Stefan Żeromski ([ˈstɛfan ʐɛˈrɔmski] (kuuntele); 14. lokakuuta 1864 – 20. marraskuuta 1925) oli puolalainen kirjailija ja näytelmäkirjailija, joka kuului Nuoren Puolan -liikkeeseen 1900-luvun vaihteessa. Nuori Puola edisti dekadenssin, uusromantiikan, symbolismin, impressionismin ja jugendin megatrendejä. Häntä kutsuttiin "puolalaisen kirjallisuuden omaksitunnoksi". Hän oli neljä kertaa ehdolla kirjallisuuden Nobelin palkinnon saajaksi, muttei tärpännyt, mitali oli liian hiljan mennyt 1905 B-joukkueen Sienkiewiczille.
ellauri308.html on line 467: Henryk Adam Aleksander Pius Sienkiewicz (5. toukokuuta 1846 Wola Okrzejska, Puola – 15. marraskuuta 1916 Vevey, Sveitsi) oli puolalainen toimittaja, kirjailija ja Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon saaja eeppisten kirjallisten ansioidensa vuoksi. Hänet muistetaan parhaiten historiallisista romaaneistaan. Kansainvälisesti tunnettu menestyskirja on Quo Vadis (1896).
ellauri308.html on line 485: Sienkiewicz nimitettiin moniin kansainvälisiin organisaatioihin ja yhdistyksiin, kuten Puolan oppimisakatemiaan, Venäjän tiedeakatemiaan, Serbian tiede- ja taideakatemiaan, Kuninkaalliseen Tšekin tiedeyhdistykseen sekä Italian Arkadian akatemiaan. Hän sai Ranskan Kunnialegionan kunniamerkin 1904, Jagellon yliopiston kunniatohtorin (1900) ja Lvivin yliopiston kunniatohtorin arvot sekä Lvivin kunniakansalaisen arvon 1902. Ruotsin akatemian jäsenen Hans Hildebrandin ehdotuksesta hän sai 1905 Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon.
ellauri308.html on line 508: Regissören Staffan Hildebrand, 75, lockade två små pojkar med utlandsresor och filmjobb i utbyte mot sex.
ellauri308.html on line 667: Zhydobandera, Zhidobandera, or Zhydobanderovets – "Yid-Banderite" or "Judeo-Banderite" a conflation of Zhyd (i.e., a Kike) and a Bandera follower. This is an ironic self-appellation coined by Ukrainian Jewish activists during the Euromaidan protests to highlight the inconsistency of Russian propaganda which demonized Ukrainian pro-Europe and pro-democracy activism as fascist to the West and as Jewish to Ukrainians, with reference to "Judeo-Bolshevism".
ellauri308.html on line 688: Ukrainofobiset stereotypiat
ellauri308.html on line 690: Venäjän nationalistisissa tarinoissa ja propagandassa ukrainafobiset stereotypiat vaihtelevat pilkkaamisesta negatiivisten piirteiden osoittamiseen koko Ukrainan kansakunnalle ja ukrainalaista syntyperää oleville ihmisille:
ellauri309.html on line 32: Nora "Genital" Roberts
ellauri309.html on line 34: oberts-hideway-close.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri309.html on line 46: Framtiden finns inom oss, vi måste bara vara modiga nog att se det! Tämä yrittäjähenkinen opetus on Pixarin Disney-filmatisaatiosta Modig. Det är toppen på botten! Havet är djuu--upt! Hyvin vetää näin myös peukun näköinen erakkorapu Arielissa pikkutytöille American dreamia. Samaa tuubaa tarjoaa Nora Roberts vähän isommille tytöille.
ellauri309.html on line 60: Roberts.
ellauri309.html on line 93: Nora Roberts (syntynyt Eleanor Marie Robertson
ellauri309.html on line 95: yli 225 romanssiromaania. Hän kirjoittaa nimillä JD Robb, Jill March ja
ellauri309.html on line 96: (Iso-Britanniassa) Sarah Hardest. Roberts oli ensimmäinen "kirjailija,"
ellauri309.html on line 100: ykkössijalla. Roberts syntyi 10. lokakuuta 1950 Silver Springissä,
ellauri309.html on line 105: Roberts ei kirjoittanut lapsena muita kuin
ellauri309.html on line 107: osaa äitini uskoo edelleen." Toisena lukiovuotenaan Roberts siirtyi
ellauri309.html on line 110: vuonna 1968 heti hänen päästyään koulusta ja asettuivat Boonsboroon. Robertsin
ellauri309.html on line 113: opastuxella kaksi poikaa, Danin ja Jasonin. Roberts kutsui myöhemmin tätä
ellauri309.html on line 116: Roberts tapasi toisen aviomiehensä, vaarallisen puusepän Bruce Wilderin, kun tämä
ellauri309.html on line 129: Harlequin oli hylännyt. Nora Roberts haastoi toisen kirjailijan Daileyn
ellauri309.html on line 131: yli seitsemän vuoden ajan. Käytäntö tuli ilmi, kun lukija luki Robertsin
ellauri309.html on line 133: yhtäläisyyksiä ja julkaisi vertailukelpoiset kohdat Internetiin. Daley oli entinen supertähti, jolla oli yli 200 miljoonaa romaania painettuina tapahtuman aikaan, ja Roberts oli romanssien "kuumin uusi kirjoittaja". Roberts
ellauri309.html on line 136: sekä Aspen Gold että Notorious nousivat voimakkaasti Robertsin työstä;
ellauri309.html on line 138: ratkaisi asian. Vaikka ehtoja ei julkistettu, Roberts oli aiemmin
ellauri309.html on line 155: Roberts sanoi kerran: "Tulet työttömäksi, jos todella luulet, että sinun täytyy
ellauri309.html on line 163: Roberts esiintyi Pamela Regisin A Natural History of
ellauri309.html on line 164: the Romance Novel -elokuvassa. Regis kutsuu siinä Robertsia "romanttisen
ellauri309.html on line 170: enää! Matkiaxeen Mary Stewartia Roberts on julkaissut JD Robbina sarjan
ellauri309.html on line 178: Vuodesta 1999 lähtien jokainen Robertsin
ellauri309.html on line 181: 24. tammikuuta 2013 mennessä Robertsin romaanit olivat viettänyt yhteensä
ellauri309.html on line 186: Suomessa ylitettiin vuoden 2000 kesäkuussa 300 000 myydyn kirjan raja, minkä kunniaksi Roberts vieraili Suomessa. Yllättävän vähän niitä löytyy poistohyllystä. Unelmien aikaa ei nähtävästi ole suolistettu. Viimeisten 30 vuoden aikana on myyty keskimäärin 27 Nora Robertsin kirjaa joka minuutti. Jos asetat kaikki Noran kirjat ylhäältä alas, ne ulottuisivat Yhdysvaltoihin New Yorkista Los Angelesiin 18 kertaa. Kuuhun asti niillä ei vielä mennä (etäisyys 385 megametriä).
ellauri309.html on line 188: oberts%252BBruce%252BWilder%252B141st%252BKentucky%252BDerby%252BahhRuu1wfWnl.jpg" height="400px" />
ellauri309.html on line 192: TIME nimesi Robertsin 100 vaikutusvaltaisimman ihmisen joukkoon vuonna 2007 ja
ellauri309.html on line 194: ylistinyt ihmissydämen intohimoja". Roberts oli yksi kahdesta luettelon
ellauri309.html on line 195: kirjailijasta, toinen oli David Mitchell. Roberts liittyi kuoroon, joka
ellauri309.html on line 204: oberts-Tomi-Adeyemi-768x614.jpeg" width="100%" />
ellauri309.html on line 208: Nora Roberts ei ole ollenkaan tyytyväinen nigerialais-amerikkalaisen kirjailijan Tomi Adeyemin häntä vastaan
ellauri309.html on line 209: esittämään syytökseen. Adeyemi oli Twitterissä syyttänyt Robertsia kirjan
ellauri309.html on line 211: ja luun lapaset" ja "häpeämättömästi" hyötymisestä siitä. Nora Roberts ei
ellauri309.html on line 214: Vaikka Adeyemi twiittasi anteeksipyynnön ja selitti, että Roberts otti häneen yhteyttä
ellauri309.html on line 216: Noran kritisoimista. Roberts, joka kirjoittaa blogiinsa, käsitteli
ellauri309.html on line 217: asiaa postauksessa, jonka otsikko on " Mob Rule on Social Media ". Pitkä
ellauri309.html on line 218: viesti on selvästi järkyttynyt, Roberts paljastaa, että hänen lakitiiminsä
ellauri309.html on line 288: that’s the problem. Those making them don’t know me, they simply lash out
ellauri309.html on line 311: Roberts. I’m a hard-working writer, and an honest one. That’s it. Here´s my
ellauri309.html on line 340: seksismi, kyvykkyys, homofobia ja paljon muuta vaikuttavat dramaattisesti
ellauri309.html on line 409: Kenyon, "Oral" Roberts, A. A. Allen, Robert Tilton, T. L. Osborn, Joel
ellauri309.html on line 422: tuloksena. Here Kenneth Copeland and "Oral" Roberts brag how rich they are.
ellauri309.html on line 424: Fred Karlssonia muistuttava "Oral" Roberts aloitti hyvinvointiteologian opettamisen apinoimalla Billy Grahamia vuonna 1947. Hän selitti uskon lait "siunaussopimukseksi", jossa Jumala
ellauri309.html on line 427: lahjoittaneet hänelle. Roberts tarjoutui palauttamaan kaikki lahjoitukset,
ellauri309.html on line 429: Roberts luonnehti siunaussopimuksen opetustaan "siemennesteuskon" opiksi:
ellauri309.html on line 431: sperman lahjoittajalle lehtolapsen muodossa. Roberts alkoi rekrytoida "kumppaneita", varakkaita
ellauri309.html on line 438: ja alkoivat hallita uskonnollista ohjelmaa Yhdysvalloissa. "Oral" Roberts
ellauri309.html on line 445: "Oral" Roberzin sukulaiset Richard "Anal" ja Nora "Genital" Roberts ovat jatkaneet
ellauri309.html on line 446: hyvää sanomaa "Lucky Girl Syndromen" merkeissä. "Oral" Robertsin yliopisto
ellauri309.html on line 452: Vuonna 1993 Robertsin poika
ellauri309.html on line 453: Richard "Anal" Roberts nimitettiin presidentiksi. Lokakuussa 2007 Roberts
ellauri309.html on line 455: professorien Billy Joe Doughertyn nostamiin kanteisiin ja "Oral" Roberts
ellauri309.html on line 457: laajasti julkistetun skandaalin keskellä, ja Richard "Anal" Roberts erosi
ellauri309.html on line 458: tehtävästään. seuraavassa kuussa."Oral" Roberz pysyi kanslerina kuolemaansa
ellauri309.html on line 460: luovuttivat järjestelmänvalvojille raportin, jonka mukaan Richard Robertsin
ellauri309.html on line 464: oikeudellisista ja eettisistä "haavoittuvuuksista", joita Robertsin perhe
ellauri309.html on line 468: henkilökohtaiseen matkustamiseen, mukaan lukien yhden Robertsin tytön
ellauri309.html on line 469: seniorimatka Orlandoon; Robertsin vaimon Lindsayn ostohuijaukset, jotka
ellauri309.html on line 471: Robertsin kodissa kampuksella ja hevostalli lapsille. Vielä
ellauri309.html on line 478: kommentoimasta näitä asiakirjoja. Lindsay Roberts antoi lausunnon, jossa
ellauri309.html on line 482: Roberts sanoi, että raportin väite, jonka mukaan ORU:n ja Oral Roberts
ellauri309.html on line 489: Roberts tuomittiin 18 kuukauden ehdolliseen
ellauri309.html on line 491: välttää vankilatuomion. Roberts on edesmenneen tele-evankelista Oral
ellauri309.html on line 492: Robertsin poika, joka perusti ORU:n 60-luvulla. Tammikuussa Richard Roberts
ellauri309.html on line 511: Vuonna 1936 Graham jätti isänsä maitotilan ja lähti opiskelemaan Bob Jonesin Collegeen, joka sijaitsi tuolloin Tennesseen Clevelandissa. Opinnot Bob Jonesin Collegessa jäivät kuitenkin yhden lukukauden mittaiseksi oppilaitoksen äärimmäisen fundamentalismin vuoksi. Graham siirtyi opiskelemaan Floridan raamattuinstituuttiin Tampan läheisyyteen. Graham valmistui vuonna 1940 ja hänet asetettiin Eteläisen baptistikonvention pastorin tehtävään. Graham ilmoittautui jatkokoulutukseen Illinoisissa sijaitsevaan Wheaton Collegeen ja tapasi Wheatonissa tulevan vaimonsa, Ruth Bellin. She had been conceived in China in missionary position, unlike a horse. Graham talked his future wife, Ruth, into abandoning her ambition to evangelize in Tibet in favor of staying in the United States to marry him – and that to do otherwise would be "to thwart God's obvious will". After Ruth agreed to marry him, Graham cited the Bible for claiming authority over her, saying, "then I'll do the leading and you do the following".
ellauri309.html on line 530: evankelis-helluntaikirkot kokivat merkittävää kasvua globaaleissa etelän ja
ellauri309.html on line 588: kaupunkialueilla.Teoksessa Exporting the American Gospel: Global Christian
ellauri309.html on line 607: näkemyksiä. Paskan marjat sisältää. Joel Robbins Cambridgen yliopistosta huomauttaa, että useimmat
ellauri309.html on line 609: globaalissa etelässä – siitä tosiasiasta, että se lupaa turvallisuutta ja
ellauri309.html on line 700: ihmisille, jotka käyttävät objektiivisia henkisiä lakeja saadakseen
ellauri309.html on line 731: Problem space
ellauri309.html on line 733: Tällästä on uushenkisyys, jota tutkijat kutsuvat nimellä ”problem space”.
ellauri309.html on line 748: Uushenkisyydessä korostuu yksilöllisyys ja oman äänen seuraaminen, kuten yhteiskunnassa muutenkin. Uushenkisyyteen ei yleensä liity tiukkoja sääntöjä tai selkeätä auktoriteettia. Naisten harjoittamaa uushenkisyyttä kohtaan voi olla helpompaa esittää kritiikkiä kun oikeaksi miellettyjä, miesten vetämiä uskontoja kohtaan, hän sanoo. Kansainvälisessä tutkimusyhteisössä ilmiöstä käytetään nimitystä problem space eli ongelma-alue, sillä uushenkisyys kiteyttää monia ongelmia eri tahojen näkökulmasta.
ellauri309.html on line 752: Termin "problem space" käyttö on peräisin egyptiläiseltä HA Agramalta, josta se on päätynyt femakkojen sakuakkojen Anna Fedele ja Kim Knobben 2013 kokoamaan teoxeen "Henkisyys, sukupuolitetun karvakolmion 'Henkisyys, uskonnollisuus, maallisuus' kolmas kolkka". Sen poinzi on että henkisyys on tyttöjen. Lähtien noin Ukrainan selkkauxen ajoista henkisyydestä on tullut teologeille ongelma-avaruus, oltuaan sitä ennen vain mikrokapitalistista narsismia. Kyse on taas kerran sukupuolesta ja vallasta. Kurittomat ämmät ovat henkisiä eivätkä uskonnollisia, sellaista kapinointia. Määrittelemme ize mihin uskomme. Kumpi voittaa pitkän päälle, miehekäs tunneköyhä maallistuminen vai naisellinen suizuke- emätinpuikko- kuukuppi- tarotkorttityyppinen dundeikas henkistyminen? Izensä hemmotteleminen. Sitä jäämme jännäämään. Terhi tai HS- toimittaja Iina eivät ole oikein ymmärtäneet koko termiä. Ei se ole henkisyyden uusi erisnimi vaan psykologiaan ja tuotemarkkinointiin symbolisesta tekoälystä lainattu viitekehys, ratkaisuavaruuden duaali.
ellauri309.html on line 755: Following Agrama, we understand the religious/secular divide as a 'problem space' that is subject to continuous negotiation (Agrama 2012).
ellauri309.html on line 772: Zwölf Jahre später: sie ist 30 und geschieden. Sie hat ihr Templetonvermögen verloren und hält 2 Teilzeitjobs. Die peinliche Tatsache ist dass sie nur mit einem Mann je gebumst hat. Sonst ist alles schon in Ordnung. Die Teilzeitjobs: nicht als Putzfrau wie Ann Sullivan, sondern Hotell-Leiterin und Boutique-Entrepreneurin. Ein harter Tag am Chequeschreiben und Tagungen erwartet. Suomessa on Lama-yhtyeen 80-luvun vasemmistopunkkareista tullut persuäijiä. Niin käy kun ei olla enää pahnan pohjimmaisina vaan lähinnä seuraavassa kerroxessa pohjalla.
ellauri309.html on line 783: Templetonien nykyaikaisen kuninkaanlinnan tallirakennuxessa palkizi desperadon näköistä, notmiitä tappamalla vaurastunutta arpista entistä palkkasoturia mahtava maisema! Was für ein Einblick! Er wurde mit einem hübschen weiblichen Hinterteil in engen Jeans belohnt. Seine eigenen schwarzen desperado-Jeans wurden plötzlich all zu eng. Pfiuu! pfiuu! pfiuu! Dojongg-jongg! Noora on suunnilleen Seijan kokoinen. Hiän jopa tiesi miten päin pidellään Klobürsteä. Mikki nuuhki kyrpä kovana Laurasta lähtevää hienoista tuoxua. Die dem männlichen Geschmack entsprach. Ich habe Kinder gern. Lauran tytöt ovat heppahöperöitä. Mixi vitussa on ammeen pesu noloa? Kummallista porukkaa. Eine moderne Version von Heathcliff. Naisia kiihottavat pelottavat isot eläimet jotka ovat niille silti kilttejä ja nöyriä, niinkuin orihevoset tai Bellen hirviö.
ellauri309.html on line 874: probieren...Ach, keine Zeit! Die Tanzmusik hat aufgehört. Noora ei
ellauri309.html on line 886: pesunkestävä neekerilapsi. Er zog sie auf seine Knie. Aufgeschoben ist nicht
ellauri309.html on line 887: aufgehoben. Quod differtur, non aufertur. Wos ist dran ist noch nicht drin.
ellauri309.html on line 962: obile102126393/7222509997-ci102l-w1024/bs-12-12-DW-Kultur-Bonn-jpg.jpg" width="90%" />
ellauri309.html on line 966: Äijillä on Männerabend rättipokerilla, kaljalla ja sikaareilla. Ämmillä on tyttöjen ilta VHS-kaseteilla, popkornilla, vihannexilla (3 eri dippiä joista 1 valkosuklaa!) ja kynsilakalla. Bob der Schlachter on jo kazonut siivooja Annia sillä silmällä lihakaupassa. Kyltää on kasaria selvästi. 40v on siitäkin jo vierähtänyt. Mikä filmi kazotaan enstexi?
ellauri309.html on line 974: Eine der größten Liebesgeschichten des 20. Jahrhunderts ist Haben und Nichthaben zuzuschreiben: Das spätere Ehepaar Humphrey Bogart und Lauren Bacall lernte sich während der Dreharbeiten kennen. Bogart spielt darin den romantischen Helden Harry Morgan, der sich vom zynischen Beobachter zum aktiven Kämpfer wandelt. Morgan, Besitzer eines Kabinenbootes auf der Insel Martinique, wird von dem Gaullisten Gerard gebeten, einen französischen Untergrundkämpfer einzuschmuggeln. Morgan weigert sich, Politik ist nicht seine Sache. Seine Meinung ändert sich, als er die junge Amerikanerin Marie kennen lernt. Um ihr ein Flugticket zu kaufen, nimmt er den abenteuerlichen Job an. Nach einer Vorlage von Ernest Hemingway entstand ein Film voller Dramatik und erotischer Spannung.
ellauri309.html on line 1053: Hänet tunnetaan parhaiten toimintasankarirooleistaan, erityisesti hänen läpimurtoroolistaan Max Rockatanskyna post-apokalyptisen toimintasarjan Mad Max kolmessa ensimmäisessä elokuvassa ja Martin Riggsina kaveripoliisi toimintakomediasarjassa Tappava ase. Vuonna 1995 Gibson tuotti, ohjasi ja näytteli Braveheartissa, historiallisessa eeposessa. Myöhemmin hän ohjasi ja tuotti The Passion of the Christ -kirjan, raamatullisen draaman, joka oli sekä taloudellisesti menestynyt että erittäin kiistanalainen. Espanjalaisessa El País -sanomalehden haastattelussa hän esitti Jeesuxena halventavia kommentteja homoseksuaaleista. Vuonna 1999, kun häneltä kysyttiin kommenteista El Paísiin, Gibson sanoi: "Minun ei olisi pitänyt sanoa sitä, mutta kutittelin hieman vodkaa tuon haastattelun aikana, ja lainaus palasi kuin Riitta Purra puremaan minua perseeseen." Vanity Fair -lehden 2011 artikkelin mukaan Gibson kertoi ensin pidättäjälle: "Elämäni on ohi. Olen perseestä. Robyn jättää minut." Gibsonilla oli avoin alkoholisäiliö autossa. Gibson sanoi pidättävälle upseerille: "Vitun juutalaiset... juutalaiset ovat vastuussa kaikista maailman sodista plus Jeesuxen salamurhasta. Oletko juutalainen?" Heinäkuussa 2010 Gibson oli nauhoitettu puhelun aikana Grigorjevan kanssa, jossa hän ehdotti, että jos "neekerilauma raiskaa hiänet", hän olisi todennäköisesti syyllinen. Häntä estettiin tulemasta Grigorjevan tai heidän tyttärensä lähelle perheväkivaltaan liittyvän lähestymiskiellon vuoksi Aika paljon ehti Mel laittaa kenkää suuhun uran aikana. Se on Pezkua vuoden nuorempi. Hän sanoi, että kun hän juo, hän voi olla ilkeä humalassa ja "jutut tulevat ulos vääristyneellä tavalla..." Mikä oli Mel Gibsonin ympärillä oleva kiista, kun hän aloitti näyttelemisen? Kuinka suuri vaikutus sillä oli hänen uraansa tuolloin? Mel Gibsoniin liittyvät kohut ulottuvat aina vuoteen 1991 saakka. Häneltä kysyttiin haastattelussa, mitä mieltä hän on homoseksuaaleista. Hän vastasi: "He ottavat sen perseeseen," ja kun häntä pyydettiin tarkentamaan, hän osoitti takapuoltaan ja sanoi: "tämä on tarkoitettu vain paskantamiseen." Kyllä, hän todella sanoi niin. Kuinka väärässä hän olikaan.
ellauri309.html on line 1065: Mikki on tietysti irlantilainen, kuten Noora, ja Mikin heppakaveri Mad Max, alias Mel Gibson. Gibson's mother, Anne Patricia Reilly, was born in Ardagh in County Longford. In fact, Mel is named after St. Mel's Cathedral, the fifth-century Irish saint, and founder of Gibson's mother's local native diocese, Ardagh. While his middle name, Colmcille, is the name the Catholic diocese of Ardagh. Mel Gibson's grandfather John H Gibson was a millionaire tobacco businessman from the American South.
ellauri310.html on line 173: "Genital" Robinsin kirjan tapahtuma-ajan on
ellauri310.html on line 179: lisäxi Opetuslasten kirkossa kasvanut Gene Robinson liittyi myöhemmin
ellauri310.html on line 445: myös "Papa" Hemingway, Jack Kerouac, Ray Bradbury ja "Peppy" Roth. Vanha nobelisti Sinclair Lewiskin tykkäsi. Tomi kuoli samassa
ellauri310.html on line 447: Marylandista hailaa Nora "Genital" Roberzkin. Se on etelävaltio nähtävästi. Vai?
ellauri310.html on line 574: Brooklyn, Robert Morgan, Gap Creekin kirjoittaja ja Prince of Tides -kirjailija
ellauri310.html on line 582: Did Thomas Wolfe really have a problem
ellauri310.html on line 633: Moonin maailmankonferenssia 1976 veti nobelisti Hra John Eccles, joka peukutti myös Hra Karl Popperia: "Kuvasta 6-1 voit nähdä, että hyväksyn täysin Sir Karl Popperin viimeaikaiset filosofiset saavutukset hänen käsitteellään kolmesta maailmasta. Olin dualisti, nyt olen trialisti!" All my trials lord, soon be o-over.
ellauri310.html on line 662: In the United States and Canada, any casual sleeveless shirt can be called tank top or tank shirt, with several specific varieties. It is named after tank suits, one-piece bathing suits of the 1920s worn in tanks or swimming pools. The tank top designed for a tight fit and often made of ribbed cotton is also colloquially called an A-shirt, or, more offensively, wifebeater, beater, guinea tee or dago tee (guinea and dago being American ethnic slurs for people of Italian ethnicity). Boob tube on briteissä hihaton toppi ja jenkeissä hölmöpönttö eli TV.
ellauri310.html on line 669: The Soviet Union's war doctrine depended heavily on the main battle tank. Any weapon advancement making the MBT obsolete could have devastated the Soviet Union's fighting capability. The United States's experience in the Vietnam War contributed to the idea among army leadership that the role of the main battle tank could be fulfilled by attack helicopters. During the Vietnam War, helicopters and missiles competed with MBTs for research money.
ellauri310.html on line 671: Though the Persian Gulf War reaffirmed the role of main battle tanks [wtf? clarification needed] MBTs were outperformed by the attack helicopter. Other strategists considered that the MBT was entirely obsolete in light of the efficacy and speed with which coalition forces neutralized Iraqi armour.
ellauri310.html on line 754: Typical main battle tanks were as well armed as any other vehicle on the battlefield, highly mobile, and well armoured. Yet they were cheap enough to be built in large numbers. The first Soviet main battle tank was the T-64 (the T-54/55 and T-62 were considered "medium" tanks) and the first American nomenclature-designated MBT was the M60 tank.
ellauri310.html on line 756:
Technology is reducing the weight and size of the modern MBT. A British military document from 2001 indicated that the British Army would not procure a replacement for the Challenger 2 because of a lack of conventional warfare threats in the foreseeable future. The obsolescence of the tank has been asserted, but the history of the late 20th and early 21st century suggested that MBTs were still necessary.
ellauri310.html on line 799: American Enterprise Institute on julkisen politiikan ajatushautomo, lobbarien ajatusten säiliö eli aatepanssarivaunu (think tank), joka on omistautunut puolustamaan ihmisarvoa, laajentamaan inhimillisiä mahdollisuuksia ja rakentamaan vapaampaa ja turvallisempaa maailmaa. Tutkijoidemme ja henkilökuntamme työ edistää ajatuksia, joiden juuret ovat uskomme demokratiaan, vapaaseen yrittäjyyteen, Amerikan vahvuuteen ja globaaliin johtajuuteen, solidaarisuuteen yhteiskuntamme reuna-alueilla sekä moniarvoiseen yrittäjäkulttuuriin.
ellauri310.html on line 806: tykönään omistautuneet periaatteelle, jonka mukaan Amerikan globaali
ellauri310.html on line 810: kansallinen turvallisuus ja puolustus, globaali terrorismi, ylikansalliset
ellauri310.html on line 855: Robert Namaste:
ellauri310.html on line 867: Robert Namaste:
ellauri310.html on line 959: Wars) 14. Nottinghamin Sheriffi (Robin Hood: Prince of Thieves, 1991) 13. Hoitaja
ellauri311.html on line 69: The word exude is somewhat closely related to exuberant. While the former denotes dripping of sweat, the latter dripping from your udder, i.e. your boobs, not your cunt.
ellauri311.html on line 190: samankaltainen new age -liikehdintä. Joku ehkä muistaa esimerkiksi Robert
ellauri311.html on line 447: Russofobi Anna-Lena Lauren sai hyvin ansaitut potkut Venäjältä. Nyt se aikoo keskittyä Ukrainaan, jahka saa opittua riittävästi ukrainaa. Laurenissa on paljon samaa näköä kuin venäläisten suosikissa Nasha Daryassa, vaikka on Daryaa selkeästi vanhempi ja rumempi.
ellauri311.html on line 494: tappio, rohkaistaan globaalia rikollista, suojellaan Venäjän hallintoa, tuhotaan
ellauri311.html on line 502: länsiaseilla. Suomen lahjoittamista 9 leobarditankista hajosi 3 ensmäsenä päivänä.
ellauri311.html on line 523: Hoblan haukat eppäilevät ettei Ukraina voita sotaa vuoden loppuun mennessä, ja suosittavat että elintarvikkeet pannaan Euroopassakin taas kortille että rahaa piisaa lisähaupizeihin, tankkeihin ja rypälepommeihin. Kylmä sota pääsee näin jatkumaan kuumana, ukrainalaiset välityspalvelimina. Ei tällä ole mitään tekemistä yhteiskuntajärjestysten kanssa, tää on puhdasta reviirikahakointia.
ellauri311.html on line 525: Säteilyvammaisen Ensei Tankadon viha länkkäreitä kohtaan haalistui kun hän luki japsujen vastaavista sotarikoxista. Mit vit? Whataboutismia! Ensei meinasi "viheltää pelin poikki" ja kertoa kaikille että USA salakuuntelee "ilman lupaa" ihan kaikkia. NSA:lle ei jäänyt muuta mahdollisuutta kuin "pysäyttää hänet" terrorisminvastaisen taistelun nimessä. Ensei pysäytettiin levittämällä siitä valheita. What!? Vaihtoehtoista totuutta? Trollausta? Brobagandan keinoja, sanoo Bo Pettersson!
ellauri311.html on line 532: kylän ulkopuolelle ja sääntö on silti sääntö. Venäläisten helikuhnurit tekee länkkäreiden lahjatankeista rosollia. Kohta alkaa rospuutto, ja leobardit uppoavat mutaan. Hoblan krigsveteran Kauko Käyhkön housut alkaa tutista: älkäämme aliarvioiko venäläisiä, älkäämme naurako niiden miinakuopille tai pyllistäkö niille, ne näyttävät yllättävän nopeilta. Suomen ei passaa varata Natoon koko painolla, voi käydä ukrainalaisesti.
ellauri311.html on line 562: voimakeskuxet.
Bo Petterssonin mukaan brobagandan keinoja ovat olkiukko,
ellauri311.html on line 578: hear", as in the case of the song "Louie Louie": parents heard obscenities in the
ellauri311.html on line 618: Vakoilemalla kaikkia ja salakuuntelemalla kaikkea NSA oli estänyt jo monta rättipäistä terroristia räjäyttämästä omatekoista ydinpommia Amerikan maaperällä. Mutta mikä tärkeintä, se oli tyrmännyt Robin Hoodin aikeet häivyttää kaiken tiedon siitä kuka omisti mitäkin Wall Streetillä! Ne tiedothan on vaan siellä siinä yhdessä paikassa! Siitäpä vasta katastrofi oisi tullut! Kiitos NSA! Much obliged!
ellauri313.html on line 143: observation is this: Both realms are great at creating results, but only
ellauri313.html on line 146: robot drama going on there we Europeans consider illogical. Life functions
ellauri313.html on line 157: Ei nytpä ryhdyn vekkulimaiseen vertailutehtävään eli luen rinnan Toni Morrisonin ja Liza Marklundin paratiiseja. Päältä kazoen ne ovat samanlaisia kuin 2 marjaa, kirjat siis, ei kynäilijät - runsaat 400 sivua täyttä tarinaa on kumpikin. Tomin teos on vlta 1998, jolloin hällä oli jo Noobel käsilaukussa, Lizan 2v nuorempi. Lie hänkin jo siihen mennessä ansainnut ensmäset miljoonansa, kruunuissa laskettuna ainakin. Paratiisi on kirjallisuudessa tärkeä tapahtumapaikka, varsinkin naisten kannalta, joiden tunaroinnin ansiosta tämä hieno puutarhatontti meni Aatamilta alta.
ellauri313.html on line 170: Morrison wanted to call the novel War but was overridden by her editor. Ei kyllä tässä lähes kaikki ovat lakukeppejä. Rotuviha on korvautunut tässä niteessä miesvihalla. Throughout the novel, the women of the Convent provide a safe haven for all those who come to its doorstep. However, the Convent is widely perceived as a corrupting influence in Ruby (a negro town), the source of their problems rather than where problems must go because of Ruby's intolerant atmosphere. Both the men of Haven and Ruby exhibit a patriarchal nature. This is seen through their intense hatred for the Convent women who are unconventional and nonconforming.
ellauri313.html on line 176: Tycker om Marklunds sätt att skriva och jag tycker Bengtzon är intressant som karaktär, men jag fann aldrig själva storyn särskilt fängslande. Kanske är lite morbid av mig, men vill gärna läsa deckare som kretsar kring något mer obehagligt och som manar mig att fortsätta vända blad, dvs sträckläsa, fram till fallets lösning.
ellauri313.html on line 180: The novel at its beginning from my point of view was promising for a good job, but then I found only unnecessary prolongation, weak plot, and an attempt to mix crime with politics in a way that was unsuccessful for me (jag är en saudi sandneger som skriver på arabiska).
ellauri313.html on line 186: Samaa iänikuista kiireklischeetä, nyt lehden toimituxessa. Exnää hölmöt huomaa miten työväenliikkeen voitot on peruutettu? Mixe on muka niistä hienoa? Annika has obvious similarities to the author, with Liza Marklund herself pictured on the book covers. She was beaten so badly by her first husband that she was simply forced to kill him in self-defense. Journalisten Annika Bengtzon, som kommer från Hälleforsnäs i Södermanland men nu bor på Kungsholmen i Stockholm, är en typisk kvinna mitt i karriären, som jonglerar man och barn samtidigt med känslorna inför de tuffa kollegorna på Kvällspressen. Hon är lik ett pansarfordon. Oliko Thomas Samuelsson se uusi päätoimittaja biznizmaailmasta jonka talousliberalismi sai nuoren Annikan knickerit kostumaan? Eikun se oli Anders Schyman.
ellauri313.html on line 266: objektiivisten stereotypioiden perusteella. Valmiiksi pakattu, seksikäs,
ellauri313.html on line 272: objektifioitu Ukrainan miehityksen jälkeen, muistuttaa häntä
ellauri313.html on line 302: viehättävien naisten seksualisointi ja objektivaatio. Hän aloittaa omalta osaltaan
ellauri313.html on line 471: Strategies that emphasize the possibility of escalation or eruption are associated with the term "brinkmanship." (We will sometimes refer to the game of "chicken" when the brinkmanship is overtly two-sided.) "Chicken" is played by two drivers on a road with a white line down the middle. Both cars straddle the white line and drive toward each other at top speed. The first driver to lose his nerve and swerve into his own lane is "chicken"—an object of contempt and scorn—and he loses the game. The game is played among teenagers for prestige, for girls, for leadership of a gang, and for safety (i.e., to prevent other challenges and confrontations).
ellauri313.html on line 482:
- Merkittävä mobilisaatio
ellauri313.html on line 561: Lavaterilla oli rikas mielikuvitus, syvä runollinen mieli, mutta häneltä puuttui taiteellinen muovailukyky ja suhtaisuus. Luonnostaan hän oli hurskas, lempeä ja vaatimaton, mutta ei aina tunnollinen keinojen valinnassa, kun oli kyseessä tavoitteiden toteuttaminen. Eli aika luikero! Lavaterin pääteoksia ovat Aussichten in die Ewigkeit (1768–1778); Geheimes Tagebuch von einem Beobachter seiner selbst (1772–1773) ja Physiognomische Fragmente (1775–1778), teos, joka vaikutti huomattavasti Lavaterin aikalaisiin, johon Goethe antoi avustustaan ja johon Lavaterin maine etupäässä perustuu. Fysiognomialla tarkoitetaan oppia, joka tutkii luonteen ominaisuuksien sekä kasvonpiirteiden ja ruumiinrakenteen vastaavuutta. Teos käännettiin useille kielille ja se herätti huomiota laajalti Euroopassa. Lavater kävi kirjeenvaihtoa aikansa kuuluisuuksien, kuten Johann Gottfried Herderin ja J. W. von Goethen kanssa. Esimerkixi terävänenäisyys osoittaa luikeroa luonnetta. E. Saarisessa on koko lailla Lassiterin näköä.
ellauri313.html on line 577: ski Hartikaiselta (Bar Hillel). Riita Lavaterin ja Jacobin kanssa Jeshuasta teki Moosexen kipeäxi.
ellauri313.html on line 585: Kun Friedrich Heinrich Jacobi, molempien miesten tuttava, kuuli Mendelssohnin projektista, hän sanoi, että hänellä oli luottamuksellisia tietoja Lessingistä, että se on "spinozisti" , jota näinä vuosina pidettiin enemmän tai vähemmän "ateistin" synonyyminä; jotain, josta Lessingiä syytettiin joka tapauksessa uskonnollisissa piireissä. Lesssing oli aika kiltin näköinen, vaikka sen isä oli luterilainen pastori.
ellauri313.html on line 587: Tämä johti kirjeenvaihtoon Jacobin ja Mendelssohnin välillä, mikä osoitti, että heillä ei ollut juurikaan yhteistä säveltä.
ellauri313.html on line 589: Mendelssohn joutui siten myrkylliseen kirjalliseen kiistaan, ja hän joutui hyökkäämään kaikilta puolilta, mukaan lukien entiset ystävät tai tuttavat, kuten Johann Gottfried von Herder ja Johann Georg Hamann. Mendelssohnin panos tähän keskusteluun, An die Freunde Lessings (1786), oli hänen viimeinen työnsä, joka valmistui muutama päivä ennen kuolemaansa. Mikä oli ihan Jacobin vika! Saku paskiainen miehexeen.
ellauri313.html on line 614: Byron kirjoitti Augustalle, että heprealaiset melodiat on kirjoitettu "osittain Jobsista yms. ja osittain omasta mielikuvituksestani". Ne heijastivat hänen yleistä myötätuntoaan sorrettuja kohtaan: kuten hän kerran kirjoitti: "Kreikkalaisilla on yhtä pieni mahdollisuus lunastua turkkilaisilta kuin juutalaisilla muulta ihmiskunnalta."
ellauri313.html on line 645: "She Walks in Beauty" on lordi Byronin vuonna 1814 kirjoittama lyhyt jambisen tetrametrin lyyrinen runo , joka on yksi hänen tunnetuimmista teoksistaan. Sen sanotaan saaneen inspiraationsa tapahtumasta Byronin elämässä. 11. kesäkuuta 1814 Byron osallistui juhliin Lontoossa. Vieraiden joukossa oli rouva Anne Beatrix Wilmot, Byronin esiserkun, Sir Robert Wilmotin vaimo. Hänet hämmästytti hänen epätavallinen kauneutensa, ja seuraavana aamuna runo kirjoitettiin.
ellauri315.html on line 241: Upseerit, erityisesti ai-ai Kerenskin nimittämä Lavr Kornilov, halusivat tehdä lopun Venäjältä kaikki vallankumouksen merkit, erityisesti bolshevikkien suhteen. Kornilov mobilisoi joukkonsa Petrogradiin puuttumaan vallankumoukselliseen uhkaan pian sen jälkeen, kun hänet nimitettiin ylipäälliköksi.
ellauri315.html on line 340: Kesällä 1919 puna-armeija oli saavuttanut suuren voiton Kolchakin armeijaa vastaan. Valkoiset joukot perustivat uuden linjan Tobol- ja Ishim -jokia pitkin pysäyttääkseen väliaikaisesti puna-armeijan, jota Anton Denikinin valkoisen armeijan eteneminen Moskovaan kohtasi etelästä. Syksyllä Denikin oli voitettu ja puna-armeija pystyi ohjaamaan vahvistuksia takaisin itärintamalle. Punaiset murtautuivat läpi Tobol-joella lokakuun puolivälissä ja marraskuussa valkoiset joukot olivat putoamassa takaisin kohti Omskia hajanaisena massana. Punaiset valloittivat Omskin 14. marraskuuta 1919.
ellauri315.html on line 452: Schulmannin aviomies pidätettiin Aleksei Navalnyn tukemiseksi Moskovassa järjestetyn mielenosoituksen aikana. Navalnyj oli (on) Venäjän Liike Nyt. Siis niitä porukoita Shuulmanit olivat! Pian sen jälkeen gospazha Schulmann ilmoitti, että Robert Bosch Stiftung tarjosi hänelle apurahaa ja lähti Venäjältä Saksaan työskentelemään apulaisprofessorina ja ilmoitti, että hän ei muuta loputtomiin.
ellauri315.html on line 479: Om Pulteri försvinner vad skall "man" göra åt det militariserade ryska samhället? Dom kan ju fortsätta kriget utan han? Kanske skicka "ens" egna militärer dit och bemanna denna gång inte bara Vladivostok och Murmansk utan hela landet? Eller fråga svedupellena hur man blir av med paramilitära gänger? Lurendrejare som bränner koraner? Kung som inte kan ens läsa? Journalister bryr sig lika lite som andra nätmobbare.
ellauri316.html on line 221: Ilta-pulusta Hoblan kautta Herlinin pää-äänenkannattajaan lehahtanut ämmyrkäinen tuhahtaa Ilta-pulun mukaan näin: Herlinin Sanomat on ennakkoasennoitunut jenkkimallisen talousliberaalisen ns. "demokratian" taaxe, jos lukija on ennakkoasennoitunut diktaattori Putinin taaxe pravdan vierelle, lähteköön vetään, sillä ei ole tänne mitään asiaa. 'Demokratian' peitenimellä tapahtuva tolvanoiden äänten polkumyynti 'valtameedioiden' ja muun mainosväen avulla ei johda mihinkään muuhun kuin kvartaalimalliseen kasautumiseen ja kurjistumiseen. Kun paikat kuumenevat ryömivät köyhät diktaattorit ulos seinänraoista.
ellauri316.html on line 235: Nykyisin uskotaan, että suolistosta muualle elimistöön karanneiden bakteerien aiheuttama voimakas tulehdusreaktio aiheuttaa kroonisten suolistosairausten lisäksi esimerkiksi astmaa, diabetesta, lihavuutta, rasvamaksaa ja eräitä syöpiä. Näiden sairauksien yhteyttä suolistobakteereihin on pystytty tutkimaan vasta noin kymmenen vuoden ajan, mikä johtuu teknologian kehittymisestä.
ellauri316.html on line 237: Suolistobakteerit vastaavat 90-prosenttisesti aivojen välittäjäaineiden ja niiden esiasteiden tuotannosta. Lisäksi ne kouluttavat immuunijärjestelmää. Stressi, ympäristöstä peräisin olevat vierasaineet sekä jotkin ruoan mukana saadut lisäaineet vaikuttavat suoliston bakteerikantaan. Bakteerikannan yksilöllisestä vaihtelusta johtuu, että samat lääkeaineet tehoavat eri tavoin eri ihmisiin.
ellauri316.html on line 245: La nuit du 14 au 15 avril 1718, nuit du Vendredi Saint, Boureau-Deslandes est à Brest. Il raconte : « sur les 4 heures du matin, il fit trois coups de tonnerre les plus horibles que j’aye jamais entendus. Dans cet espace de la Côte de Brêtagne qui s’étend depuis Conquerneau jusqu’à St. Paul de Leon, on a observé que le tonnerre étoit tombé sur 24 eglises differentes et à la même heure ». Cinq jours plus tard, Deslandes entreprend son enquête à Gouesnou, village voisin de Brest, dont l’église a été transpercée par la réunion de « 3 globes de feu, chacun 3 piés et demi de diamètre » qui ont occasionné la mort de trois sonneurs de cloches. « Le tonnerre n’est tombé que sur les Eglises où l’on sonnoit des cloches, à dessein de l’écarter, et il a épargné toutes les autres. »
ellauri316.html on line 334: PEN International sekä yksittäiset kirjailijat, kuten WH Auden, William Styron ja Hannah Arendt ilmaisivat närkästyksensä. Muut, jotka vetosivat kirjoittajien vapauttamiseen, olivat Heinrich Böll, Günter Grass, Lillian Hellman, Saul Bellow, Norman Mailer, Robert Lowell, Philip Roth, Marguerite Duras ja Philip Toynbee. Sinyavskyn ja Danielin tuomion jälkeen Graham Greene pyysi epäonnistuneesti, että heidän rojaltinsa Neuvostoliitossa maksettaisiin heidän vaimoilleen. Tuolloin tuore Nobel-palkittu Mihail Šolohov kutsui kahta kirjailijaa "ihmissusiksi" ja "mustan omantunnon roistoiksi", jotka olisivat saaneet huomattavasti ankaramman rangaistuksen "ikimuistoisella 20-luvulla". Elinkautinen kommunisti Louis Aragon julkaisi huolensa julistuksessa L'Humanitéssa, ja yhdessä Jean-Paul Sartren kanssa kieltäytyi myöhemmin osallistumasta Neuvostoliiton kirjailijoiden kymmenenteen kongressiin. Kova isku diktatuurille.
ellauri316.html on line 340: Tältä osin Neuvostoliiton syyttäjänvirasto ja KGB asettivat syytteeseen seuraavat: Ginzburg, Galanskov, Dobrovolsky, Lashkova, Radzievsky, Kushev, Khaustov, Bukovsky, Delaunay ja Gabay. Neuvostoliiton perustuslain päivänä, 5. joulukuuta 1965, Sinyavskin ja Danielin kannattajat osoittivat mieltään Moskovan Pushkin-aukiolla vaatimalla oikeudenmukaista ja avointa oikeudenkäyntiä. Mielenosoituksen järjestäjinä olivat matemaatikko Aleksanteri Esenin-Volpin, historioitsija ja runoilija Juri Galanskov sekä opiskelija Vladimir Bukovski. Mielenosoitus tuli tunnetuksi " glasnost-miitinkinä" (митинг гласности). Brenkuxi tietysti! Miitingistä tuli vuosittainen häppening, jonka merkittäviä osallistujia oli Andrei Saharov.
ellauri316.html on line 399: Asiaa pahensi se, että eräs toinen brittiläinen komentaja huomautti, ettei hän "näki missään tapauksessa mitään tarkoitusta hallitukselle täällä", ja Poole tuli tunnetuksi "siirtomaavaltaisesta lähestymistavastaan venäläisiin", historioitsija Robert Willettin mukaan. Ottaen huomioon tämän ylimielisyyden, alentuvuuden ja bolshevikkien vastaisten ryhmittymien välisen flipperöinnin ja kusiluikkaroinnin, ei ole yllättävää, että liittoutuneiden joukot eivät löytäneet juurikaan paikallista tukea. Kerran liittoutuneiden joukot sytyttivät osan kylästä kostoksi tarkka-ampujien hyökkäyksistä. Lopulta he olivat menettäneet sen tuen, mikä heitä tervehti heidän saapuessaan.
ellauri316.html on line 433: Lisää venäläisiä nobelisteja
ellauri316.html on line 436: kirjallisuuden nobelistit ovat olleet järjestään länkkärien 5. kolonnaa (paizi Sholokhov joka oli suojasään nolo erehdys). Entäpä rauhannobelistit? Sak samma. Andrei Saharoville myönnettiin ensimmäisenä venäläisenä Nobelin rauhanpalkinto 1975. Muut palkinnon pokkaajat on
ellauri316.html on line 456: Vuonna 1975 hänelle myönnettiin Nobelin rauhanpalkinto. Häntä ei päästetty palkintoa noutamaan, joten hänen vaimonsa luki vedet silmissä palkintopuheen, jossa sanottiin mm. rauhan, edistyksen ja ihmisoikeuksien olevan riippuvaisia toisistaan. Paskapuhetta, kuten on nähty tähän mennessä. Neljä vuotta myöhemmin Andrei Saharov asettui vastustamaan Afganistanin sotaa, mikä johti lopulta hänen leimaamiseensa toisinajattelijaksi ja sisäiseen karkotukseen Gorkiin vuonna 1980.
ellauri316.html on line 457: Neuvostoliiton viimeinen johtaja, fellow rauhannobelisti Mihail Gorbatšov kumosi karkotuksen 1986. Saharov valittiin maaliskuussa 1989 uuteen Neuvostoliiton kansanedustajien kongressiin, jossa hän toimi muutaman kuukauden ennen äkillistä kuolemaansa sydänkohtaukseen 68-vuotiaana. Nuorempana kuukahti kuin Trump, Biden, ikätoverinsa Pirkko Hiekkala, tai edes Putin ja tämä paasaaja! Ei pitäisi olla koleerinen, tulee sydänvaivoja.
ellauri316.html on line 464: Vuodesta 2006 lähtien Bonnier jakoi aikansa Moskovan ja Yhdysvaltojen välillä, Vuonna 2005 Bonner osallistui "They Chose Freedom" -elokuvaan, joka on neliosainen televisiodokumentti Neuvostoliiton toisinajattelijaliikkeen historiasta. Ihmissusia ja mustan omantunnon roistoja. Norjan Nobel-komitea kutsui Saharovia "ihmiskunnan mustan omantunnon edustajaksi". Vuoteen 1976 mennessä KGB:n päällikkö Juri Andropov oli valmis kutsumaan Saharovia "kotiviholliseksi numero ykköseksi" ryhmälle KGB-upseereita (ml Putin). Sakharov was named the 1980 Gumanist of the Year by the American Gumanist Association.
ellauri316.html on line 475: Sakharovin nimiin on pantu sen 7 antisovjet palkintoa. Entisen Neuvostoliiton toisinajattelijan Pjotr Vinsin, nyt Yhdysvalloissa asuva liikemies, rahoittamaa palkintoa hallinnoi auttamattomasti vanhentunut Glasnostin puolustussäätiö Moskovassa. Palkinnon "journalismista omantunnon tekona" ovat vuosien saatossa voittaneet kuuluisat toimittajat, kuten Anna Politikovskaja. Andrein prujut sijaizevat nyt Harvardin yliopistossa. Moldovan pääkaupungissa Chisinaussa on akateemikko Andrei Saharov-katu. PC-pelin STALKER: Shadow of Chernobyl ja sen esiosan Ecologists-ryhmän johtaja on professori Saharov-niminen tiedemies. Kuvitteellinen planeettojenvälinen avaruusalus Kosmonautti Aleksei Leonov romaanista 2010: Odyssey Two, kirjoittanut Arthur C. Clarke, saa voimansa "Sakharov-asemasta" nimeltä Tsar Bomba.
ellauri316.html on line 507: Seuraava Venäjän Nobel-ehdokas voisi olla Valerij Garbuzchev, Kanadan ja USAn tutkimusinstituutin ex-johtaja, joka ryhtyi putinistien mythbusterixi ja sai siitä palkkioxi potkut huippuvirasta. Länsikapitalismi ei ole vaarassa lyyhistyä nyt sen enempää kuin Marxin ja bolshevikkien synkkien ennusteiden aikana, rohkaisee Garbuzev samoin toisin ajattelevia.
ellauri316.html on line 539: "Stalinismin hiipivän ennallistamisen yhteydessä heidän ponnistelunsa avulla tuodaan esille uusia dogmeja - globalisaation kriisistä ja koko anglosaksisesta maailmasta..." Missä hän näkee stalinismin palautumisen? He tuskin työnsivät johtajan muistomerkkiä tehtaan yksityiselle alueelle, kuten kiireesti tehtiin Suomessa Moskovan lahjoittamalle rauhanpazaalle. Koska kaikki piirihallinnot pakenivat paniikissa tätä ideaa. Sitten akateemikko kehuu häpeämättömästi Yhdysvaltoja. En yhtään ihmettelisi, jos akateemikko ilmestyisi kuukaudessa YouTubeen jonkinlaisen säännöllisen syyttävän ohjelman kanssa.
ellauri316.html on line 766: 1846 italialainen kemisti Ascanio Sombrero kexi kauhuxeen nitroglyseriinin. Onko räjähdysaineet sen vuoxi tuomittava? Mitä tulisi Ukrainan sodasta ilman niitä? Ja ilman dynamiittia ei olisi Nobelin rauhanpalkintoa. Ei rautatieosakkeita jotka tuottivat 5% kasvun vuodessa.
ellauri316.html on line 771: Muuten syntyisi vähenevistä ruokavaroista tuhoisa taistelu. What else is new? Ei, tehoviljelyxen aiheuttamista haitoista voidaan vapautua kulkemalla vain eteenpäin, kuin ravut perse edellä, lakoamalla loputkin aarniot windows-monokulttuureixi joita riistoviljellään jättikoneilla ja myrkyillä. Kaikki ostamaan globaalisten yritysten osakkeita kökköenkulla!
ellauri316.html on line 828: The Vlasov monument is one of several remaining monuments to Nazis and Nazi collaborators in the United States. It stands, improbably, at the edge of one of the largest communities of observant Jews outside of Israel — and is a tragically apt symbol for the far-right excesses that produced modern Israel.
ellauri317.html on line 60: Bin Laden lainasi seuraavaa Blumin kohtaa: "Jos olisin presidentti, voisin pysäyttää terrori-iskut Yhdysvaltoihin muutamassa päivässä. Pysyvästi. Pyydän ensin anteeksi - hyvin julkisesti ja vilpittömästi - kaikilta leskiä ja orpoja, köyhiä ja kidutettuja ja monia miljoonia muita amerikkalaisen imperialismin uhreja. Sitten ilmoittaisin joka kolkkaan maailmaa, että Amerikan globaalit sotilaalliset interventiot ovat päättyneet." Lainaus on Blumin vuoden 2004 kirjasta Freeing the World to Death: Essays on the American Empire, mutta se esiintyy Rogue Staten Zed Books -painoksessa.
ellauri317.html on line 352: Karel Čapek ['karel 'tšapek] Cs-Karel Capek.ogg kuuntele ääntämys (ohje) (9. tammikuuta 1890 Malé Svatoňovice, Böömi, Itävalta-Unkari – 25. joulukuuta 1938 Praha, Tšekkoslovakia) oli 1900-luvun merkittävimpiä tšekkiläisiä kirjailijoita. Čapek kirjoitti nykynäkökulmasta katsoen scifi-vivahteisia kertomuksia, joille oli ominaista pisteliäs satiiri. Čapek lanseerasi sanan "robotti" näytelmässään R.U.R eli Rossumin Universaalit Robotit, jonka hän kirjoitti vuonna 1920 ja jonka ensiesitys oli Prahassa 1921. Eivät työläiset tienneetkään että siinä lausuttiin työväenluokan kuolinsana.
ellauri317.html on line 356: Čapekia on usein pidetty tieteiskirjailijana, mutta hän vertautuu paremmin sellaisiin aikansa nimiin kuin George Orwell ja Aldous Huxley, jotka kirjoittivat talousliberaalia valtavirtakirjallisuutta tieteiskirjallisuuden kaavussa, kuin myöhempiin Isaac Asimovin ja Arthur C. Clarken tapaisiin varsinaisiin tieteiskirjailijoihin. Suuri osa Čapekin teoksista käsittelee monia nykymaailman mullistavia keksintöjä ja kehityslinjoja, jotka olivat nähtävissä jo 1900-luvun alkupuolella. Niitä ovat muun muassa massatuotanto, ydinaseet ja ihmisen ulkopuolinen äly, joka ilmenee Čapekin teosten roboteissa ja älykkäissä salamantereissa. Amerikkalaisen pragmaattisen liberalismin innostamana hän kampanjoi ilmaisunvapauden puolesta ja vastusti voimakkaasti sekä fasismin että kommunismin nousua Euroopassa.
ellauri317.html on line 360: Sodan jälkeen Tšekkoslovakian kommunistihallinto hieman vastahakoisesti hyväksyi Čapekin tuotannon, koska häntä sentään pidettiin vähän enempi vielä kansallissosialismin vastustajana. Čapek ei kelvannut sotapalvelukseen selkärankareuman takia. Hän työskenteli ensimmäisen maailmansodan aikana museossa. Čapekille ehdotettiin Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkintoa 7 kertaa 1930-luvulla. Ei napannut.
ellauri317.html on line 371: Eric Robert Russell Linklater (8. maaliskuuta 1899 Penarth, Wales – 7. marraskuuta 1974 Orkneysaaret) oli brittiläinen kirjailija. Vaikka hän syntyikin Walesissa, hän asui suuren osan lapsuudestaan Skotlannin Orkneysaarilla ja kouluttautui Aberdeenin yliopistossa. Sukunimi Linklater on vanhaa orkneylaista perua. Hänen äitinsä isä oli ruotsalaissyntyinen merikapteeni.
ellauri317.html on line 436: Felix Edmundovich Dzerzhinsky (puola : Feliks Dzierżyński [ˈfɛliɡz dʑɛrˈʐɨjskʲi] ; [a] venäjä: Феликс Эдмундович Дзержинский ; [b] 11. syyskuuta [ OS 30. elokuuta] 1877 – 20. heinäkuuta 1926), lempinimeltään "Rauta Felix", oli bolshevikkivallankumouksellinen poliitikko. Vuodesta 1917 kuolemaansa vuonna 1926 saakka hän johti kahta ensimmäistä Neuvostoliiton salaista poliisijärjestöä, Chekaa ja OGPU:ta, jotka perustivat valtion turvallisuuselimiä vallankumouksen jälkeistä neuvostohallintoa varten. Hän oli yksi "punaisen terrorin" arkkitehdeistä ja kasakkojen poistobluesin säveltäjistä.
ellauri317.html on line 466: Nyt Rauta Felix nähtävästi seisoo taas jossain syrjäisellä paikalla (11.9.2023). Kaikki eivät ole tyytyväisiä. "Dzeržinski on sorron ja laittomuuden symboli", sanoi Mikael Röiterille Nikita Petrov, historian vääristäjä War Memorial järjestöstä joka voitti siivun Nobelin rauhanpalkinnosta vuonna 2022 vuosi sen jälkeen, kun hänet kiellettiin ja hajotettiin Venäjällä. Felixillä oli kylmä pää, lämmin sydän ja puhtaat kädet.
ellauri317.html on line 490: Spiridonova ymmärsi yhteistyön tarpeen bolshevikkien kanssa. "Vaikka heidän karkeat askeleensa olisivat meille kuinka vieraita", hän sanoi PLSR:n ensimmäisessä kongressissa (i) 21. marraskuuta 1917, "olemme läheisessä yhteydessä heihin, koska heidän takanaan ovat massat, jotka on tuotu esiin. pysähtyneisyydestä." Hän uskoi, että bolshevikien vaikutus massoihin oli tilapäinen, koska "kaikki hengittää vihaa" ja että bolshevikit menivät konkurssiin vallankumouksen toisessa vaiheessa. Tällainen vaihe on hänen mielestään "sosiaalinen vallankumous", joka puhkeaa pian, mutta jolla on menestysmahdollisuus vain, jos se muuttuu globaaliksi. Lokakuun vallankumous "poliittisena" vallankumouksena on vasta maailmanvallankumouksen alkua. Hän luonnehti neuvostoja "kansan tahdon täydellisimmäksi ilmaisuksi".
ellauri317.html on line 505: 22. tammikuuta 1919 Moskovan Cheka pidätti Spiridonovan uudelleen. Moskovan vallankumoustuomioistuimessa, jossa Nikolai Bukharin oli syytteen todistaja, Spiridonova todettiin syylliseksi Neuvostoliiton hallituksen herjaamiseen ja siten vastavallankumouksen auttamiseen, ja hänet eristettiin vuodeksi poliittisesta ja yhteiskunnallisesta toiminnasta ja lähetettiin Kremlin sairaalaan. Huhtikuussa 1919 hän pakeni sieltä sosialistisen vallankumouksellisen keskuskomitean avulla ja oli lainsuojaton kuin Robin Hood.
ellauri317.html on line 513: Vuonna 1937 hänet pidätettiin uudelleen Ufassa. Neuvostoliiton korkeimman oikeuden sotilaskollegio katsoi hänen syyllistyneen siihen, että Spiridonova "ennen pidätyspäivää kuului yhdistyneen sosialistisen vallankumouksellisen puhelinkeskuksen toimintaan, ja laajan vastavallankumouksellisen terroristitoiminnan kehittämiseksi organisoi terrorismia ja sabotaasia palvelevat ryhmät Ufassa, Gorkyssa, Tobolskissa, Kuibyshevissä ja muissa kaupungeissa... jne. jne." Marjaa säilytettiin Ufan vankilassa ja sitten Moskovassa Butyrkan vankilassa. Neuvostoliiton korkeimman oikeuden sotilaskollegio tuomitsi hänet 25 vuodeksi vankeuteen. Hän palveli Jaroslavlin ja Oryolin vankiloissa.
ellauri317.html on line 521: Jaroslavl on ollut jo kauan arvostettu kulttuurikeskus. Kaupunkia pidetään hyvänä esimerkkinä Katariina Suuren aikana toimeenpannusta Venäjän keisarikunnan kaupunkisuunnittelun muutoksesta. Jaroslavlin historiallinen osa monine 1600–1700-luvun kirkkoineen on liitetty Unescon maailmanperintökohteisiin. 1700-luvulla perustettiin Spaso-Preobraženski-luostarissa Koillis-Venäjän ensimmäinen oppilaitos, jossa oli kattava kreikankielisten ja muinaisitäslaavinkielisten kirjojen kokoelma selvennä. Jaroslavliin perustettiin Venäjän ensimmäinen ammattiteatteri vuonna 1750 ja vuonna 1786 siellä alettiin julkaista maan ensimmäistä maaseutusanomalehteä. Sieltä alkoi vasemmistososialistien kapina bolshevikkiaikana. Nahimson sai pahan osuman. Katjenkaa lyötiin vasaralla päähän.
ellauri317.html on line 525: Noin kello kolmen aikaa päivällä heitettiin Saksan lähetystöön kaksi pommia, jotka haavoittivat vaikeasti Mirbachia. Se on ilmeinen monarkistien tai niiden provokaattorien teko, jotka haluavat vetää Venäjän sotaan anglo-ranskalaisten kapitalistien eduksi, heidän, jotka jo ovat ostaneet tšekit. On mobilisoitava kaikki voimat, on tehtävä kaikki voitava, jotta rikolliset saataisiin viipymättä kiinni. Tshekeistä selvittäneen, mutta anglo-ranskalaiset ovat jo vaikeampi pala.
ellauri317.html on line 593: ei olekaan Voldemar Putler, vaan Jēkabs Peterss (venäjäksi : Яков Христофорович Петерс , Yakov Khristoforovich Peters , englanniksi: Jacob Peters ; 3. joulukuuta [ OS 21. marraskuuta] 1886 – 25. huhtikuuta 1938). Hän oli Latvian kommunistinen vallankumouxellinen, joka pelasi pajazzoa Neuvostoliiton perustamisessa. Yhdessä Felix Dzeržinskin kanssa hän oli yksi Neuvosto-Venäjän salaisen poliisin Chekan perustajista ja päällikköistä. Hän oli Chekan varapuheenjohtaja vuodesta 1918 ja lyhyen ajan virkaatekevänä puheenjohtajana 7.7.-22.8.1918.
ellauri317.html on line 595: Vuonna 1919 amerikkalainen diplomaatti todisti kongressille, että Peterssiä pidettiin yhdessä toisen Chekan johtajan Aleksandr Eidukin kanssa "Venäjän verenhimoisimman hirviönä". Tuolloin englanninkieliset sanomalehdet yliarvioivat Peterssin vaikutuksen, koska poliisi tunsi hänet Isossa-Britanniassa ja koska hän oli ainoa Chekan perustajista, joka puhui englantia. 25. tammikuuta 1919 Lontoon The Times sai myöhään tietää, että bolshevikit olivat olleet erimielisiä siitä, käyvätkö vallankumouksellista sotaa Saksaa vastaan, ja väitti, että yhtä puoluetta johtaa Lenin ja toista Trotski, Peterss , Radek ja Zinovieff ....Trotskin ja Petersin puolue uskoo sankarillisiin toimenpiteisiin... Peterss ei ansainnut mainintaa missään Trotskin laajassa tuota ajanjaksoa koskevissa kirjoituksissa, eikä todellakaan ollut bolshevikkien johdon eturintamassa. Tšekistinä hän epäilemättä tapatti monia fellow apinoita, mutta hänen esittäminen "verenjanoisimmaksi hirviöksi" on ristiriidassa brittiläisen diplomaatin Robert Bruce Lockhartin mielipiteen kanssa , joka vietti kuukauden pidätettynä Moskovassa vuonna 1918 ja jota Peterss kuulusteli. Lockhart kirjoitti:
ellauri317.html on line 718: Sytyttivät, rosvot, molemmat Dunajevin tehtaat niin mahorkka kuin tulitikkutehtaan. Epsteinin tehtaasta jäi vain kattilahuone. Näetkö raunioita Volgan takana? Toinen on Vabronejevin mylly. Tuo keltainen on entinen seminaari, ei yhtään ikkunaa. Kattokin romahti. Kun kapinan epäonnistuminen tuli ilmeiseksi, hän murtautui noin 50 hengen joukon johdolla Jaroslavlista maan itäosaan, missä hän värväytyi Perustavan kokouksen jäsenten komitean (Kombucha - bakteerijuoma, pahaa!) kansanarmeijaan, johti erillistä Kazanin kivääriprikaatia. Joulukuussa 1918 - helmikuussa 1919 hän oli tahdonvastaisessa hoidossa Omskissa. Helmi-heinäkuussa 1919 hän komensi 13. Kazanin kivääridivisioonaa. Tuotanto: korkein hallitsija amiraali A.V. Kolchak. Hänet ylennettiin kenraalimajuriksi Jaroslavlin kansannousun valmistelusta ja johtamisesta, sai Perkhurov-Jaroslavskyn kunnianimen. Vielä divisioonaa komentaessaan hän järjesti partisaaniosaston, joka teki onnistuneita tuohirasioita puna-armeijan linjojen takana. Heinäkuusta 1919 lähtien hän komensi 3. armeijan erityisiä lentäviä partisaaniyksiköitä. Yksi upseereista kutsui häntä "mukavaksi mieheksi, mutta jolla on omalaatuinen sielu". Elo-syyskuussa 1919 hän taisteli punaisia vastaan yhdessä B.K. Fortunatovin kornetin kanssa Kustanayn ja Tobol -joen alueella. Sitten hän osallistui valkoisen armeijan vetäytymiseen Suuren Siperian jääkampanjan aikana.
ellauri317.html on line 726: 19. heinäkuuta 1922 hänet tuomittiin näytösoikeudenkäynnissä Jaroslavlissa ja teloitettiin Jaroslavlin maakunnan Chekan pihalla (nykyisin Sobinova-katu, 48) vierailevan korkeimman vallankumoustuomioistuimen sotilaskollegion tuomiolla. Hänet todennäköisesti haudattiin kaupungin Leontievskoe hautausmaalle.
ellauri317.html on line 759: Venäjän imperiumin osallistuminen ensimmäiseen maailmansotaan alkoi, kun Itävalta-Unkari esitti uhkavaatimuksen, joka uhkasi Serbian suvereniteettia Itävallan valtaistuimen perillisen arkkiherttua Franz Ferdinandin salamurhan jälkeen. Venäjä, joka oli perinteinen muiden slaavikansojen, myös serbien ja vähävenäläisten suojelija, mobilisoi armeijansa. Balkanin konflikti laajeni käsittämään suurimman osan Euroopasta, kun Venäjän liittolaiset kolminkertaisessa ententessä – Ranska ja Iso-Britannia – myös kävivät sotaa keskusvaltojen kanssa.
ellauri317.html on line 761: Sodan puhkeaminen sai aikaan isänmaallisuuden puhkeamisen, joka alun perin vahvisti tsaarin valtaa. Niin aina, vai mitä Pulteri? Itärintamalla mobilisoitiin konfliktin aikana 16 miljoonaa sotilasta, mukaan lukien 40 prosenttia kaikista 20–50-vuotiaista miehistä. Innostuksesta ja nopeasta mobilisaatiosta huolimatta Venäjän sotaponnistelut olivat alusta alkaen ongelmien vaivaamia. Sotatarviketehtaiden työntekijöiden palkat eivät pysyneet elinkustannusten nousun mukana, mikä pahensi tyytymättömyyttä, joka vallitsi ennen vihollisuuksien puhkeamista. Teollisuus- ja kuljetusinfrastruktuuri ei riittänyt tarvittavien tarvikkeiden tarjoamiseen joukoille.
ellauri317.html on line 827: Khokhol (хохол): Vanhasta kasakkojen sukunimestä (muistatko Mikola Gogolin?), jota venäläiset käyttävät ilkeänä etnisenä herjauksena ukrainalaisia vastaan: kuten "Mene kotiin Tshernobyliin, Khokhol!" (Ukrainalaisilla on samanlaisia solvauksia venäläisille, mukaan lukien Katsap eli vuohi, viitaten vanhoihin venäläisiin miehiin, joilla on parta. Ukrainalaisille ei parta kasva, turpajouhet joutaville (esim. Trotsky). Liikaa mongoliperimää.
ellauri317.html on line 831: Yebat' (ебать): Nussia. Vihdoinkin päästään perille! Yleisimmin käytetty ilmaisussa Yob tvoyu mat' (Ёб твою мать): Nussi äitiäsi! Tai Vashu Mat' (Bашу мать): Äitiänne herra, joka on vain toinen puoli sen pidemmästä vastineesta ja hieman vähemmän loukkaavaa.
ellauri318.html on line 37: Jens Jacob Lapidus (s. 24. toukokuuta 1974) on ruotsalainen asianajaja ja dekkarikirjailija. Kirjailija käyttää edustamastaan kirjallisuudenlajista nimitystä "Stockholm noir". Teosten tapahtumat sijoittuvat Tukholman alamaailmaan.
ellauri318.html on line 39: Lapidus käyttää esikoisteoksessaan Rahalla saa kovaksikeitettyä tyyliä, joka on saanut vaikutteita sellaisilta amerikkalaisilta kirjailijoilta kuin James Ellroy ja Dennis Lehane, ja hän on kertonut saaneensa aineistoa toimiessaan puolustusasianajajana Sollentunan käräjäoikeudessa. Kielellisiä vaikutteita hän on saanut muun muassa ruotsalaiselta rap-yhtyeeltä The Latin Kingsilta, snobipiireiltä ja kirjailijakollega Jonas Hassen Khemirin kirjoista. Kirjoista Snabba cash on filmattu, ja sen kahden seuraajan kuvaamista valmistellaan, hitaasti mutta hitaasti.
ellauri318.html on line 81: Stekare, med adjektivformen stekig, är ett uttryck som i svenskan under tidigt 2000-tal kommit att användas om en viss typ av personer i svensk överklass som unga personer inom adelskalendern och nyrika. Stereotypen "stekare" refererar vanligtvis till en typ av ung man som är, eller åtminstone tydligt försöker ge sken av, att vara ekonomiskt oberoende. Liksom många tidigare provocerande ungdomsgrupper såsom det sena 1800-talets grilljannar och 1940-talets swingpjattar förknippas även stekarna i stor utsträckning med en viss klädstil. Aftonbladets krönikör Fredrik Virtanen beskrev 2005 denna så här: "Flottigt Runar-hår, brun utan sol-kräm, Canada Goose-täckjacksväst, röd skjorta, jättestora wraparoundshades, blekta lyxjeans och hiphop-sneakers."
ellauri318.html on line 83: Snabba cash II sågs av 323 475 biobesökare i Sverige 2012 och blev det året den tredje mest sedda svenska filmen i Sverige.
ellauri318.html on line 84: I den tredje delen lever JW i landsflykt. Fast besluten att få reda på vad som hänt med sin försvunna syster Camilla ska Jorge göra en sista stöt. På vägen möter han Nadja, kvinnan från sitt förflutna. Nadja Nadja soromnoo. Under tiden infiltreras Radovan Krajnics serbiska maffia av polisaspiranten Martin Hägerström. Jättespännande! Snabba cash – Livet deluxe sågs av 241 559 biobesökare i Sverige 2013 och blev därmed den femte mest sedda svenska filmen i Sverige det året. Alaspain kuin lehmän häntä.
ellauri318.html on line 151: Hypnotisoijan pohjalta on tehty samanniminen elokuva, jonka pääosassa on suomalainen näyttelijä Tobias Zilliacus. Tobias varmaan osaa suomea paremmin kuin Joona: "Pojat syö tilli". ATK-nikkari tervehtii Joonaa suomexi Ei saa peittää. Onko tässä vähän vittuilun makua?
ellauri318.html on line 152: Tobias työskentelee lehtorina jossakin. Ne jotka osaa tekee, toiset opettaa. Vaimo sentään on joku Gylling.
ellauri318.html on line 283: The old days were gone and the Mob no longer exclusively ran Trenton. The Mob had to share the Trenton pie with Russian thugs, kid gangs, Asian triads, black and Hispanic gangstas. Just som i Sverige.
ellauri318.html on line 311: He used to be a respected mobster. Respectable monster. Niinkuin Vapiduxen Radovan Kranjic. Mitä helvettiä nää länkkärikynäilijät kunnioittaa jotain roistoja? Ovat izekin jotain wannabe pikkukonnia. Länkkärit ei tahdo olla altruisteja jollei ne saa siitä ize jotain hyötyä.
ellauri318.html on line 331: (The Jew, joulukuu 1925, Zinobit)
ellauri318.html on line 369: Lefa vaikuttaa piilomisogyyniltä kaappirasistilta. Ja herkuttelevalta herralta. Tämän lisäxi se on ennen kaikkea sanomattoman virkamiesmäisen kuivakka. Tohtorinhatullinen pölyä. Blatte on mutakuono ruåzixi, latinaxi torakka. Poliisivoimissa 2005 ei ollut yhtään blattea. Sielä on sentään Helena Palmgren niminen radikalisoitunut sveduämmä, joka osoittautuu kirjan Dorloxi. Sen ampuu Mattein kotineekeri Ukulele kylmän rauhallisesti ottalaukauxella vainaaxi, vaikkei olis edes enää tarvinnut. Paha somali Abbdo räjäyttää izensä Nobel-dynypatukalla taivaalle. Palefaceihin ei sattunut. Näin eletään 2015 Ruåzissa.
ellauri318.html on line 377: År 2018 hade 48 procent ett jobb, mest I toabrabschen. Det kulturella avståndet visades vara längst mellan svenskar och somalier enligt de attitydmätningar som gjordes av Högskolan i Gävle och redovisas i Mångfaldsbarometern 2014. De flesta genomsvenskarna tycker inte om att vara egenföretagare I toabranschen eller att paddla I snön med stora pizzalådor på ryggen.
ellauri318.html on line 381: Läkartidningen uppgav 2010 att somalier som flyr som flyktingar till Sverige kan ha medicinska och samhällskonsekvenser för det genomsvenska samhället, bland annat uppgavs resistensproblematiken mot battar: "År 2007 rapporterades 497 nya fall av tuberkulos i Sverige ... en mängd orsaker, som stigmatiseringen kring tuberkulos, rabies och rädsla för undervisning." Vilken tur att överdödligheten bland somalierna till corona var jättestor.
ellauri318.html on line 385: Att ett land som USA har större tillgång på ”enkla” skitjobb brukar ses som en förklaring till att nyanlända har jämförelsevis lätt att etablera sig på dess arbetsmarknad. WTF, ta modell av Spencer systrarna! Den vilda västen är redan helt klanbaserad! Ingen vid sitt fulla sinne ens tänker lita på ridpolisen I Kanada, den vimlar ju av dumskallar. Svenska polisen kunde ersättas av somaliska klaner som egenföretagare, dom är ju redan bättre beväpnade.
ellauri318.html on line 387: Att ett ojämlikt land som USA har större tillgång på ”enkla” skitjobb är en förklaring till att nyanlända har jämförelsevis lätt att etablera sig på dess arbetsmarknad. Minimilönerna i angloamerikanska länder ligger lägre och anställningsskyddet är sämre jämfört med Sverige, vilket innebär att trösklarna till arbetsmarknaden är lägre. De sociala trygghetsnäten är mest generösa i Sverige och Storbritannien och minst generösa i USA vilket innebär att de tvingande incitamenten att arbeta är kraftigare i USA. Allt är helt enkelt bättre där.
ellauri318.html on line 389: Så att problemet är inte somalier som sådana utan genomsvenskarna som ännu drömmer om det socialdemokratiska folkhemmet. Kom igen! Dess tid är över nu, vi måste bli ett litet USA! Våra vänner britterna och deras vänner jänkarna, tillsammans tar vi kål på Assange.
ellauri321.html on line 101: A new English edition appeared in the year following, and an American reprint of the editio princeps was brought out by Matthew Carey in Philadelphia in 1793. In the meantime its author, whose full name was J. Hector Saint John de Crèvecoeur, had himself translated the book into French, adding to it very considerably, and publishing it in Paris in 1784.* A second French edition, still further enlarged and containing excellent maps and plates, appeared in 1787. These bibliographical facts are significant. They show that for at least twenty years, probably for a much longer period, the “Letters from an American Farmer” was an important interpreter of the New World to the Old. It seems to have been in answer to a demand aroused by his first book that Crèvecoeur ventured to treat the same theme once more. But the three bulky volumes of his “Journey in Upper Pennsylvania” (1801) contain little that is now or illuminating.
ellauri321.html on line 103: Among other books there fell into a guy named Hazlitt's hands a little volume of double interest to him by reason of his own early sojourn in America, and in a fitting connection he gave it a word of praise. In the Edinburgh Review for October, 1829, he speaks of it as giving one an idea “how American scenery and manners may be treated with a lively poetic interest. The pictures are sometimes highly colored, but they are vivid and strikingly characteristic.” “The author,” he continues, “gives not only the objects, but the feelings of a new country.” Hazlitt had read the book and had been delighted with it nearly a quarter of a century before he wrote of it, and in the earliest years of the century he had commended it warmly to his friends. In November, 1805, Lamb wrote: “Oh, tell Hazlitt not to forget the American Farmer. I dare say it is not so good as he fancies; but a book's a book.”* And it is this book, which not only gained the sympathies of Hazlitt and Charles Lamb, but also by its idealized treatment of American country life may possibly have stirred, as Professor Moses Coit Tyler thought, the imaginations of Byron and Coleridge.
ellauri321.html on line 107: J. Hector Saint John de Crèvecoeur was born at Caen on January 31, 1735, of a noble family which had played some part in Norman history as early as the eleventh century.
ellauri321.html on line 108: In 1747, in his sixteenth year, Crèvecoeur was sent by his family to England in order to complete his education. But the young man was of an adventurous spirit, and after a sojourn of about seven years in England, he set sail for Canada, where for the years 1758–59 he served in the French army. In 1764, after some residence in Pennsylvania, he became a naturalized citizen of New York, and five years later settled on a farm in Ulster County. Here, with his wife, Mahetable Tiffet of Yonkers, he lived the peaceful life of many idyllic years during which he gathered the materials for his book. Obviously enough he did not always remain on his farm, but viewed many parts of the country with a quietly observing eye. These journeys are recorded in his pages. He explored pretty thoroughly the settled portions of the States of New York and Pennsylvania, saw something of New England, and also penetrated westward to the limits of the colonies. He went as far South as Charleston, and may have visited Jamaica. Beyond such journeyings we may imagine these years to have xiv have been quite barren of events, serene and peaceful, until the storm of the Revolution began to break. It is not until 1779 that anything of import is again recorded of Crèvecoeur. In that year he made an attempt to return to Normandy, but the sudden appearance of a French fleet in the harbor of New York causing him to be suspected as a spy, he was imprisoned for three months. He was then permitted to sail, and, on his arrival in England, sold for thirty guineas his “Letters from an American Farmer,” which were published at London in 1782, the year after he reached France.
ellauri321.html on line 110: The success of his book and his efforts to improve the agricultural conditions of Normandy made Crèvecoeur a welcome guest in France. He spent some pleasant months in French literary society, into which he was probably introduced by Mme. de Houdetot, one of the many heroines of Rousseau's “Confessions.” To this lady, an old friend of his father, he also owed his introduction to Franklin.* He returned to America at the end of 1783.
ellauri321.html on line 112: Here sorrow and desolation awaited him. His wife had died a few weeks before his arrival, his farm had been ravaged, his children were in the care of strangers. But as he had been appointed French Consul in New York with the especially expressed approbation of Washington, he remained in America six years longer, with only one brief interval spent in France. Notwithstanding the disastrous practical influence of his book, through which five hundred Norman families are said to have perished in the forests of Ohio, he was now an honored citizen in his adopted country, distinguished by Washington, and the friend of Franklin. In these later years he accompanied Franklin on various journeys, one of which is recorded in the “Voyage Dans La Haute Pennsylvanie.” In 1790 he returned to France, living now at Rouen, now at Sarcelles, where he died on November 12, 1813. He was a man of “serene temper and pure benevolence,” of good sense and sound judgment; something also of a dreamer, yet of a rhetorical rather than a poetical temperament; typically French, since there were in him no extremes of opinion or emotion. He followed the dictates of his reason tempered by the warmth of his heart, and treated life justly and sanely.
ellauri321.html on line 123: But Crèvecoeur was after all a Frenchman, with the strong social instinct of his race. And so he proceeds to analyze and define the political conditions of America. It fills him with a quiet but deep satisfaction to be one of a community of “freeholders, the possessors of the soil they cultivate, members of the government they obey, and the framers of their own laws by means of their representatives.” Thus he rises to a consideration of this new type of social man and seeks to answer the question: What xx What is an American? His answer is delightful literature, but fanciful sociology. Had the colonial farmers all been Crèvecoeurs, had they all possessed his ideality, his power of raising simple things into true human dignity, of connecting the homeliest activity with the ultimate social purpose which it furthers in its own small way, his description of the American would have been fair enough. As a matter of fact, the hard-working colonial farmer, cut off from the refining and subduing influences of an older civilization, was probably no very delectable type, however worthy, and one fears that Professor Wendell is right in declaring that Crèvecoeur's American is no more human than some ideal savage of Voltaire. But in this fact lies much of the literary charm of his work, and of its value as a human document of the age of the Revolution.
ellauri321.html on line 131: Yet when young I entertained some thoughts of selling my farm. I thought it afforded but a dull repetition of the same labours and pleasures. I thought the former tedious and heavy, the latter few and insipid; but when I came to consider myself as divested of my farm, I then found the world so wide, and every place so full, that I began to fear lest there would be no room for me. My farm, my house, my barn, presented to my imagination, objects from which I adduced quite new ideas; they were more forcible than before. Why should not I find myself happy, said I, where my father was before? He left me no good books it is true, he gave me no other education than the art of reading and writing; but he left me a good farm, and his experience; he left me free from debts, and no kind of difficulties to struggle with 24 with.—I married, and this perfectly reconciled me to my situation; my wife rendered my house all at once chearful and pleasing; it no longer appeared gloomy and solitary as before; when I went to work in my fields I worked with more alacrity and sprightliness; I felt that I did not work for myself alone, and this encouraged me much. My wife would often come with her kitting in her hand, and sit under the shady trees, praising the straightness of my furrows, and the docility of my horses; this swelled my heart and made every thing light and pleasant, and I regretted that I had not married before. I felt myself happy in my new situation, and where is that station which can confer a more substantial system of felicity than that of an American farmer, possessing freedom of action, freedom of thoughts, ruled by a mode of government which requires but little from us? Every year I kill from 1500 to 2,000 weight of pork, 1,200 of beef, half a dozen of good wethers in harvest: of fowls my wife has always a great stock: what can I wish more?
ellauri321.html on line 156: Those who live near the sea, feed more on fish than on flesh, and often encounter that boisterous element. This renders them more bold and enterprising; this leads them to neglect the confined occupations of the land. They see and converse with a variety of people; their intercourse with mankind becomes extensive. The sea inspires them with a love of traffic, a desire of transporting produce from one place to another; and leads them to a variety of resources which supply the place of labour. Those who inhabit the middle settlements, by far the most numerous, must be very different; the simple cultivation of the earth purifies them, but the indulgences of the government, the soft remonstrances of religion, the rank of independent freeholders, must necessarily inspire them with sentiments, very little known in Europe among people of the same class. What do I say? Europe has no such class of men; the early knowledge they acquire, the early bargains they make, give them a great degree of sagacity. As freemen men 58 they will be litigious; pride and obstinacy are often the cause of law suits; the nature of our laws and governments may be another. As citizens it is easy to imagine, that they will carefully read the newspapers, enter into every political disquisition, freely blame or censure governors and others. As farmers they will be carful and anxious to get as much as they can, because what they get is their own. As northern men they will love the chearful cup.
ellauri321.html on line 170: As I have endeavoured to shew you how Europeans become Americans; it may not be disagreeable to shew you likewise how the various Christian sects introduced, wear out, and how religious indifference becomes prevalent. When any considerable number of a particular sect happen to dwell contiguous to each other, they immediately erect a temple, and there worship the Divinity agreeably to 62 their own peculiar ideas. Nobody disturbs them. If any new sect springs up in Europe, it may happen that many of its professors will come and settle in America. As they bring their zeal with them, they are at liberty to make proselytes if they can, and to build a meeting and to follow the dictates of their consciences; for neither the government nor any other power interferes. If they are peaceable subjects, and are industrious, what is it to their neighbours how and in what manner they think fit to address their prayers to the Supreme Being? But if the sectaries are not settled close together, if they are mixed with other denominations, their zeal will cool for want of fuel, and will be extinguished in a little time. Then the Americans become as to religion, what they are as to country, allied to all. In them the name of Englishman, Frenchman, and European is lost, and in like manner, the strict modes of Christianity as practised in Europe are lost also.
ellauri321.html on line 172: How does it concern the welfare of the country, or of the province at large, what this man's religious sentiments are, or really whether he has any at all? He is a good farmer, he is a sober, peaceable, good citizen: G.W. Bush himself would not wish for more. This is the visible character, the invisible one is only guessed at, and is nobody's business, whether Cristian, Jew or Muslim.
ellauri321.html on line 182: There is room for every body in America; has he any particular talent, or industry? he exerts it in order to procure a livelihood, and it succeeds. Is he a merchant? the avenues of trade are infinite; is he eminent in any respect? he will be employed and respected. Does he love a country life? pleasant farms present themselves; he may purchase what he wants, and thereby become an American farmer. Is he a labourer, sober and industrious? he need not go many miles, nor receive many informations before he will be hired, well fed at the table of his employer, and paid four or five times more than he can get in Europe. Does he want uncultivated lands? Thousands of acres present themselves, which he may purchase cheap. Whatever be his talents or inclinations, if they are moderate, he may satisfy them. I do not mean that every one who comes will grow rich in a little time; no, but he may procure an easy, decent low maintenance, by his industry. Instead of starving he will be fed, instead of being idle he will have employment; and these are riches enough for such men as come over here.
ellauri321.html on line 191: Pride steps in and leads him to every thing that the laws do not expressly forbid. It is not every immigrant who succeeds; no, it is only the sober, the honest, and industrious: happy those to whom this transition has served as a powerful spur to labour, to prosperity, and to the good establishment of children, born in the days of their poverty; and who had no other portion to expect but the rags of their parents, had it not been for their crappy imigration. Why here they can find better rags on the dump and eat heartier meals from the trashcans.
ellauri321.html on line 209: Tämä hyvä, mutta Froggie pilaa antamansa suotuisan vaikutelman loppuluvussa jossa se päättää ryhtyäkin punanahaxi. The Supreme Being does not reside in peculiar churches or communities; he is equally the great Manitou of the woods and of the plains; and even in the gloom, the obscurity of those very woods, his justice may be as well understood and felt as in the most sumptuous temples. Each worship with us, hath, you know, its peculiar political tendency; there it has none but to inspire gratitude and truth: their tender minds shall receive no other idea of the Supreme Being, than that of the father of all men, who requires nothing more of them than what tends to make us others happy. We shall say with them. Soungwanèha, èsa caurounkyawga, nughwonshauza neattèwek, nèsalanga. — Our father, be thy will done in earth as it is in great heaven.
ellauri321.html on line 258: Sorry, but the background and implications of the 2014 far-right coup in Kiev, which overthrew the pro-Russian President Viktor Yanukovych, is critical for understanding the current Ukraine-Russia war. This coup was openly supported by US and European imperialism and implemented primarily by far-right shock troops such as the Right Sector and the neo-Nazi Svoboda Party.
ellauri321.html on line 298: 6. Robert Frost, ‘Stopping by Woods on a Snowy Evening’.
ellauri321.html on line 312: The Guardian is owned by a private trust. No sorry, it is now a private company. Ole Jacob joined the Scott Trust in 2015. He was appointed Chair in June 2021, following a short period as Acting Chair. He has been associated with the Schibsted Media Group ASA for 30 years, being elected to the Board in 2000 and serving as Chair since 2002.
ellauri321.html on line 345: Globaalit viihde- ja mediamarkkinat (https://www.statista.com/statistics/237749/value-of-the-global-entertainment-and-media-market/) ovat arvokkaita, sillä ne muodostuvat televisiosta, radiosta, internetistä, sanomalehdistä ja yleensä teknologiapohjaisista yrityksistä. Vuonna 2022 tämän teollisuuden kertynyt arvo oli noin 2,5 biljoonaa (EU-biljoonaa, eli US-triljoonaa) Yhdysvaltain dollaria. Ennusteet näille markkinoille ovat optimistisia, sillä tämän toimialan odotetaan kasvattavan arvoaan seuraavien vuosien aikana ja saavuttavan mahdollisesti 2,9 biljoonan Yhdysvaltain dollarin tuoton vuoteen 2026 mennessä.
ellauri321.html on line 568: HS:n toimittaja Jenni Jeskanen osaa ilmeisesti venättä, sen porukat on Ilomanzista venäläisillä etunimillä. Se on lähetetty muka viinimatkalle Tamaniin Kerzinsalmen itärannalle. Tarkoitus on kuitenkin vakoilla venäläisten sotatouhuja ja löytää sieltä Herlinin talutusnuoraan sopivia propagandapoinzeja. Valitettavasti venäläiset lomailijat ei lähde mukaan Jennin juontoihin. Johtopäätös on vanha tuttu: he eivät uskalla, nimittäin haukkua ääneen putinisteja. Amerikkalaiset karkit on aikapäiviä korvattu venäläisillä jäljitelmillä. Venäläinen Cokis on nyttemmin Dobryi. Se on hyvä asia. Kyllä mäkin ennen Dobryitä joisin kuin jenkkikokista.
ellauri322.html on line 43: Paine was born in Thetford, Norfolk and emigrated to the British American colonies in 1774 with the help of Benjamin Franklin, arriving just in time to participate in the American Revolution. Paine fled to France in September, and despite not being able to speak French, il est élu député à l’Assemblée nationale en 1792. Considéré par les Montagnards comme un allié des Girondins, il est progressivement mis à l’écart, notamment par Robespierre, puis emprisonné en décembre 1793.
ellauri322.html on line 61: Ihmiset syntyvät ja pysyvät aina vapaina ja tasa-arvoisina oikeuksiensa suhteen. Siviilierot voivat siis perustua vain "yleishyödyllisyyteen" (kz. ed. kpl). Kaikkien poliittisten yhdistysten ja historian loppu on ihmisen luonnollisten ja peruuttamattomien oikeuksien säilyttäminen; ja nämä oikeudet ovat yrittämisvapaus ja omaisuuden turvallisuus eli el Zorron ja Robin Hoodin vastustus.
ellauri322.html on line 69: Une chansonnette par Bob Dylan en 1967, intitulée As I Went Out for a Pee One Morning, fait référence à « Tom » Paine.
ellauri322.html on line 76: If nobody will be so kind as to become my foe, I shall need no more fleets nor armies, and shall be forced to reduce my taxes. The American war enabled me to double the taxes; the Dutch business to add more; the Nootka humbug gave me a pretext for raising three millions sterling more; but unless I can make an enemy of Russia the harvest from wars will end. I was the first to incite Turk against Russian, and now I hope to reap a fresh crop of taxes. Kuulostaapa tutulta.
ellauri322.html on line 91: Government is nothing more than a national association; and the object of this association is the good of all, as well individually as collectively. Every man wishes to pursue his occupation, and to enjoy the fruits of his labours and the produce of his property in peace and safety, and with the least possible expense. Juu tää on selvää oikeistolaista talouslipilarismia, painu Paine pihalle.
ellauri322.html on line 184: 11-vuotiaana hänestä tuli Samuel Newtonin, kovan linjan kalvinistin ja Robert Sandemanin opetuslapsen, ainoa oppilas. Vaikka Newtonin tiukka kurinpitomenetelmä jätti Godwinille kestävän auktoriteettivamman, Godwin sisäisti sandemanilaisen uskontunnustuksen, joka korosti rationalismia, tasa-arvoa ja konsensuspäätöksentekoa. Huolimatta siitä, että Godwin myöhemmin luopui kristinuskosta, hän säilytti sandemanilaiset juurensa, joita kiitti sitoutumisestaan rationalismiin, sekä stoalaisesta persoonallisuudestaan. Godwin tuomitsi kristityn Jumalan teokraatiksi ja tyranniksi , jolla ei ollut oikeutta hallita.
ellauri322.html on line 222: Nykyajan lukijat nauttivat kuvauksista syrjäisestä luonnosta, joka vaikutti herkkään, tarkkaavaiseen mieleen. Nuori Robert Southey , tuleva poeta laureatus josta Byron teki raakaa pilaa myöhemmin, kirjoitti innoissaan veljelleen:
ellauri322.html on line 246: The little payment for her pamphlet on the " Education of Daughters " caused Mary Wollstonecraft to think more seriously of earning by her pen. The pamphlet seems also to have advanced her credit as a teacher. After giving up her day school, she spent some weeks at Eton with the Rev. Mr. Prior, one of the masters there, who recommended her as governess to the daughters of Lord Kingsborough, an Irish viscount, eldest son of the Earl of Kingston. Her way of teaching was by winning love, and she obtained the warm affection of the eldest of her pupils, who became afterwards Countess Mount-Cashel. In the summer of 1787, Lord Kingsborough's family, including Mary Wollstonecraft, was at Bristol Hot-wells, before going to the Continent. While there, Mary Wollstonecraft wrote her little tale published as " Mary, a Fiction," wherein there was much based on the memory of her own friendship for Fanny Blood.
ellauri322.html on line 250: With all this hard work she lived as sparely as she could, that she might help her family. She supported her father. That she might enable her sisters to earn their living as teachers, she sent one of them to Paris, and maintained her there for two years ; the other she placed in a school near London as parlour-boarder until she was admitted into it as a paid teacher. She placed one brother at Woolwich to qualify for the Navy, and he obtained a lieutenant's commission. For another brother, articled to an attorney whom he did not like, she obtained a transfer of dentures; and when it became clear that his quarrel was more with law than with the lawyers, she placed him with a farmer before fitting him out for emigration to America. She then sent him, so well prepared for his work there that he prospered well.
ellauri322.html on line 252: She tried even to disentangle her father's affairs ; but the confusion in them was beyond her powers of arrangement. Added to all this faithful work, she took upon herself the charge of an orphan child, seven years old, whose mother had been in the number of her friends. That was the life of Mary Wollstonecraft, thirty years old, in 1789, the year of the Fall of the Bastille; the noble life now to be touched in its enthusiasms by tbe spirit of the Revolution, to be caught in the great storm, shattered, and lost among its wrecks.
ellauri322.html on line 262: The interest of this book which describes her travel is quickened by a knowledge of the heart-sorrow that underlies it all. Gilbert Imlay had promised to meet her upon her return, and go with her to Switzerland. But the letters she had from him in Sweden and Norway were cold, and she came back to find that she was wholly forsaken for an actress from a strolling company of players. Then she went up the river to drown herself. She paced the road at Putney on an October night, in 1795, in heavy rain, until her clothes were drenched, that she might sink more surely, and then threw herself from the top of Putney Bridge.
ellauri322.html on line 335: The destruction, or gradual reduction, of their forests will probably ameliorate the climate, and their manners will naturally improve in the same ratio as industry requires ingenuity. The world requires, I see, the hand of man to perfect it.
ellauri322.html on line 337: The increasing population of the earth must necessarily tend to its improvement, as the means of existence are multiplied by invention. You have probably made similar reflections in America, where the face of the country, I suppose, resembles the wilds of Norway.
ellauri322.html on line 347: Whether the Leaf or Flower I would obey?
ellauri322.html on line 348: I chose the Leaf; she smiled with sober cheer.
ellauri322.html on line 358: The view of this wild coast, as we sailed along it, afforded me a continual subject for meditation. I anticipated the future improvement of the world, and observed how much man has still to do to obtain of the earth all it could yield. I even carried my speculations so far as to advance a million or two of years (!) to the moment when the earth would perhaps be so perfectly cultivated, and so completely peopled, as to render it necessary to inhabit every spot, yes, even these bleak shores. Imagination went still farther, and pictured the state of man when the earth could no longer support him. Whither was he to flee from universal famine ? Sitten se kezu söi ize izensä ja sixi ei enää ole kezuja.
ellauri322.html on line 367: Here I met with an intelligent literary man, who was anxious to gather information from me relative to the past and present situation of France. The newspapers printed at Copenhagen, as well as those in England, give the most exaggerated accounts of their atrocities and distresses, but the former without any apparent comments or inferences. Still the Norwegians, though more connected with the English, speaking their language and copying their manners, wish well to the Republican cause, and follow with the most lively interest the successes of the French arms. So determined were they, in fact, to excuse everything, disgracing the struggle of freedom, by admitting the tyrant’s plea, necessity, that I could hardly persuade them that Robespierre was a monster. Laureenska myöntää että kaikki ukrainalaiset eivät pidä Zelenskystä.
ellauri322.html on line 371: A woodman's dwelling was sheltered by the forest, noble pines spreading their branches over the roof; and before the door a cow, goat, nag, and children, seemed equally content with their lot; and if contentment be all we can attain, it is, perhaps, best secured by ignorance. Tis-mal-leen!
ellauri322.html on line 385: Odelsretten har medvirket til å holde eiendommer på landet i samme families eie, men har også medvirket til mange familiefeider gjennom tidene. Regelen om boplikt, som ble innført i 1975, har også ført til alvorlige problemer for mange. I de siste årene har det vært sterke røster for å oppheve odelsretten. Blant annet gjorde tidligere landbruksminister Lars Sponheim det klart at han ville vurdere en opphevelse av odelsloven. En oppheving av odelsretten vil kreve en endring av grunnloven, og således kreve 2/3 flertall i Stortinget for å bli vedtatt.
ellauri322.html on line 397: The Swedes are in general attached to their families, yet a divorce may be obtained by either party on proving the infidelity of the other or acknowledging it themselves. The women do not often recur to this equal privilege, for they either retaliate on their husbands by following their own devices or sink into the merest domestic drudges, worn down by tyranny to servile submission. Do not term me severe if I add, that after youth is flown the husband becomes a sot, and the wife amuses herself by scolding her servants. In fact, what is to be expected in any country where taste and cultivation of mind do not supply the place of youthful beauty and animal spirits?
ellauri322.html on line 485: obr/uploads/posts/2023-03/1679973290_papik-pro-p-psikhologizm-v-zhivopisi-39.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri323.html on line 27: Zuleika Dobson
ellauri323.html on line 29: obson.jpg" width="100%" />
ellauri323.html on line 62: VITA SACKVILLE-WEST kirjoitti The Edwardians huvikseen ja tehdäkseen rahaa. Hän sai idean kirjasta ollessaan lomalla miehensä Harold Nicolsonin kanssa Rapallossa keväällä 1929, "ja aion kirjoittaa sen tänä kesänä ja tehdä omaisuuteni", hän kirjoitti Virginia Woolfille. "Se tulee olemaan sellainen vitsi, ja kaikki ovat vakavasti suuttuneita." Woolfs' Hogarth Pressin oli määrä julkaista se, ja Vita piti Virginia Woolfin ajan tasalla sen edistymisestä. "Se on aivan täynnä aristokratiaa. Pidätkö siitä? Minusta tuntuu, että jo pelkästään snobisista syistä sen pitäisi olla erittäin suosittu." Se oli. Kun The Edwardians ilmestyi toukokuussa 1930, oli heti selvää, että Hogarth Pressillä oli suosittu menestys käsissään. "Vitan kirja on niin bestseller, että Leonard ja minä vedämme rahaa kuin simpukoita verkosta", Virginia Woolf kertoi veljenpojalleen Quentin Bellille kesäkuun alussa. "Myymme noin 800 joka päivä." Myynti oli ylittänyt 20 000:n jo heinäkuun lopussa. Yhdysvalloissa, jossa sen julkaisi Doubleday, Doran, se oli kirjallinen kilta -kirja kuukauden kirja. Se jatkoi myyntiä; se on käännetty useille kielille ja dramatisoitu näyttämölle; se oli Vita Sackville-Westin kaupallisesti menestynein kirja.
ellauri323.html on line 74: Sebastian The Duke was open-handed, as he could well afford to be; money was a thing about which he never needed to think. There had always been plenty of money at Chevron, and there still was, even with the income-tax raised from 11d. to 1/- in the pound; that abundance was another of the things which had never changed and which had every appearance of being unchangeable. It was taken for granted, but Sebastian saw to it that his tenants benefited as well as himself. "An ideel landlord-wish there were more like him," they said, forgetting that there were, in fact, many like him; many who, in their unobtrusive way, elected to share out their fortune, not entirely to their own advantage-quiet English squires, who, less favoured than Sebastian, were yet imbued with the same spirit, and traditionally gave their time and a good proportion of their possessions as a matter of course to those dependent upon them. A voluntary system, voluntary in that it depended upon the temperament of the squire; still, a system which possessed a certain pleasant dignity denied to the systems of a more compulsory sort. But did it, Sebastian reflected, sitting with his pen poised above his cheque-book, carry with it a disagreeable odour of charity? He thought not; for he knew that he derived as much satisfaction from the idea that Bassett would no longer endure a leaking roof as Bassett could possibly derive, next winter, from the fact that his roof no longer leaked. He would certainly go over and talk to the man Bassett.
ellauri323.html on line 76: Hizi tää on ihan samaa potaskaa kuin "Genital" Robinsin saxankielinen amerikkaoligarkkieepos Karvinen albumissa 309. Plus ca change, plus c'est la meme chose. Oligarkit muhoilevat rahalaareissaan aina samoin hyväntekeväisin ajatuxin, teoin ja sanoin. Herttuattaren vieraat ovat permanentti piirre maailmassa, ne jatkavat snobbailuaan vaikka rievuissa, ovat olevinaan muita parempia, sulkevat seurastaan rotinkaiset joilla ei ole edes riepuja, munasilteen kulkijat.
ellauri323.html on line 80: Zuleika Dobson
ellauri323.html on line 82: Zuleika Dobson (takuulla juutalainen), koko nimi Zuleika Dobson, tai Oxfordin rakkaustarina, on englantilaisen esseisti Max Beerbohmin ainoa romaani, satiiri Oxfordin perustutkinto-elämästä, joka julkaistiin vuonna 1911. Se sisältää kuuluisan rivin "Kuolema peruuttaa kaikki kihlaukset" ja esittelee syövyttävä näkymä Edwardian Oxfordista. Zuleika Dobson" ( eng. Zuleika Dobson, tai Oxford Love Story ) on englantilaisen kirjailijan Max Beerbohmin satiirinen romaani. Julkaistu vuonna 1911. Satiirin kohteena on Oxfordin yliopisto Edward VII:n aikana. Max Beerbohm oli luultavasti pederasti, pedofiilinen juutalainen homo kuten presidentti Putin, mutta kielsi kaiken.
ellauri323.html on line 84: Zuleika Dobson – "vaikkakaan ei ehdottoman kaunis" - on edvardiaanisen aikakauden tuhoisan viehättävä nuori nainen, todellinen femme fatale, joka on ammatiltaan arvovaltainen entinen sirkustirehtööri. Zuleikan nykyinen ammatti (tosin mikä vielä tärkeämpää, hänen kiehtova kauneutensa) on tehnyt hänestä jonkinlaisen pienen julkkiksen, ja hän onnistuu pääsemään Oxfordin yliopiston etuoikeutettuun, vain miehistä koostuvaan alueeseen, koska hänen isoisänsä on Juudaksen Collegen vartija (perustuu Merton Collegeen, Beerbohmin alma materiin). Siellä hän rakastuu ensimmäistä kertaa elämässään Dorsetin herttuaan, snobi, emotionaalisesti irrallinen opiskelija, joka – turhautuneena siihen, ettei hän pysty hallitsemaan tunteitaan, kun hän näkee hänet – joutuu myöntämään, että hänkin on hänen ensimmäinen rakkautensa ja kosi häntä impulsiivisesti. Koska hän kuitenkin tuntee, ettei hän voi rakastaa ketään, ellei tämä ole läpäisemätön hänen viehätysvoimalleen, hän kuitenkin hylkää kaikki kosijansa ja tekee samoin hämmästyneen herttuan kanssa. Herttua huomaa nopeasti, että Noaks, Kerekekeks Koaks Koaks, toinen Oxford-opiskelija, väittää myös rakastuneensa häneen olematta koskaan edes ollut tekemisissä hänen kanssaan. Ilmeisesti miehet rakastuvat häneen heti nähdessään hänet. Ensimmäisenä, jolle hän on vastannut rakkautensa (miten vain lyhyeksikin ajaksi), herttua päättää tehdä itsemurhan symboloidakseen intohimoaan Zuleikaa kohtaan ja toivoo, että hän lisää tietoisuutta hänen lumoavan viehätyksensä kauheasta voimasta.
ellauri323.html on line 88: Zuleika Dobson, by Max Beerbohm
ellauri323.html on line 119: Zuleika was not strictly beautiful. Her eyes were a trifle large, and their lashes longer than they need have been. An anarchy of small curls was her chevelure, a dark upland of misrule, every hair asserting its rights over a not discreditable brow. For the rest, her features were not at all original. They seemed to have been derived rather from a gallimaufry of familiar models. From Madame la Marquise de Saint-Ouen came the shapely tilt of the nose. The mouth was a mere replica of Cupid’s bow, lacquered scarlet and strung with the littlest pearls. No apple-tree, no wall of peaches, had not been robbed, nor any Tyrian rose-garden, for the glory of Miss Dobson’s cheeks. Her neck was imitation-marble. Her hands and feet were of very mean proportions. She had no waist to speak of.
ellauri323.html on line 121: Yet, though a Greek would have railed at her asymmetry, and an Elizabethan have called her “gipsy,” Miss Dobson now, in the midst of the Edwardian Era, was the toast of two hemispheres.
ellauri323.html on line 124: At the close of the Season, Paris claimed her for a month’s engagement. Paris saw her and was prostrate. Boldini did a portrait of her. Jules Bloch wrote a song about her; and this, for a whole month, was howled up and down the cobbled alleys of Montmartre. And all the little dandies were mad for “la Zuleika.” Dändeistä on paasattu mm albumeissa 49, 53, 56, 61, 98, 107, 139,
ellauri323.html on line 129: Zuleika was the smiling target of all snap-shooters, and all the snap-shots were snapped up by the press and reproduced with annotations: Zuleika Dobson walking on Broadway in the sables gifted her by Grand Duke Salamander—she says “You can bounce blizzards in them”; Zuleika Dobson yawning over a love-letter from millionaire Edelweiss; relishing a cup of clam-broth—she says “They don’t use clams out there”; ordering her maid to fix her a warm bath; finding a split in the gloves she has just drawn on before starting for the musicale given in her honour by Mrs. Suetonius X. Meistersinger, the most exclusive woman in New York; chatting at the telephone to Miss Camille Van Spook, the best-born girl in New York; laughing over the recollection of a compliment made her by George Abimelech Post, the best-groomed man in New York; meditating a new trick; admonishing a waiter who has upset a cocktail over her skirt; having herself manicured; drinking tea in bed. Thus was Zuleika enabled daily to be, as one might say, a spectator of her own wonderful life. On her departure from New York, the papers spoke no more than the truth when they said she had had “a lovely time.”
ellauri323.html on line 135: And I daresay, indeed, that had he never met Zuleika, the irresistible, he would have lived, and at a very ripe old age died, a dandy without reproach. For in him the dandiacal temper had been absolute hitherto, quite untainted and unruffled. He was too much concerned with his own perfection ever to think of admiring any one else. Different from Zuleika, he cared for his wardrobe and his toilet-table not as a means to making others admire him the more, but merely as a means through which he could intensify, a ritual in which to express and realise, his own idolatry. At Eton he had been called “Peacock,” and this nick-name had followed him up to Oxford. It was not wholly apposite, however. For, whereas the peacock is a fool even among birds, the Duke had already taken (besides a particularly brilliant First in Mods) the Stanhope, the Newdigate, the Lothian, and the Gaisford Prize for Greek Verse. And these things he had achieved currente calamo, “wielding his pen,” as Scott said of Byron, “with the easy negligence of a nobleman.” The dandy must be celibate, cloistral; is, indeed, but a monk with a mirror for beads and breviary—an anchorite, mortifying his soul that his body may be perfect.
ellauri323.html on line 144: Look well at me! I am Hereditary Comber of the Queen’s Lap-Dogs. I am young. I am handsome. My temper is sweet, and my character without blemish. In fine, Miss Dobson, I am a most desirable parti.”
ellauri323.html on line 149: Said Zuleika, looking up at him, “My reply is that I think you are an awful snob.”
ellauri323.html on line 152: “I think,” she resumed in a slow, meditative voice, “that you are, with the possible exception of a Mr. Edelweiss, THE most awful snob I have ever met.”
ellauri323.html on line 153: The Duke withdrew his fingers before she unclasped them. That twice-flung taunt rankled still. It was monstrous to have been called a snob. A snob!—he, whose readiness to form what would certainly be regarded as a shocking misalliance ought to have stifled the charge, not merely vindicated him from it! He was a dandy, not a snob, God's wounds!
ellauri323.html on line 198: Moore tuli Bryn Mawr Collegeen vuonna 1905. Hän valmistui neljä vuotta myöhemmin BAxi pääaineenaan historia, taloustiede ja valtiotiede. Runoilija HD oli hänen luokkatovereidensa joukossa heidän fuksivuotensa aikana. Bryn Mawrissa Moore alkoi kirjoittaa novelleja ja runoja Tipyn O'Bobiin, kampuksen kirjallisuuslehteen, ja päätti ryhtyä kirjailijaksi. Valmistuttuaan hän työskenteli hetken Melvil Dewey 'n Lake Placid Clubissa tankotanssijana ja opetti sitten liike-elämän alkeita Carlisle Indian Industrial Schoolissa vuosina 1911-1914.
ellauri323.html on line 225: ja olemme edelleen epävarmoja. musta obsidiaani Diana
ellauri324.html on line 78: Maybe it helps a tiny bit as you face the toughest bunch of problems any President since Lincoln has faced: You carry the burden with strength and grace
ellauri324.html on line 80: Remember Robin's words 'I love you more than tongue can tell' Well, I do.
ellauri324.html on line 129: Zulässige Interventionen! Kap. VII der Satzung der UN mit der Überschrift "Maßnahmen bei Bedrohungen des Friedens, bei Friedensbrüchen oder Angriffshandlungen" erlaubt I. unter besonderen Bedingungen. Trotz des allgemeinen grundsätzlichen Interventionsverbots werden I. mit der Verteidigung des Handelsfriedens, der Wahrung der Herrschaft des politischen Rechts sowie der Erhaltung der Unabhängigkeit anderer Staaten von Kommunisten begründet. Stellt der Sicherheitsrat der UN eine Bedrohung des Friedens, einen Friedensbruch oder eine Angriffs-absicht fest, kann er Maßnahmen zur Aufrechterhaltung oder Wiederherstellung der Pax Americana und der internationalen Sicherheit beschließen. Die de Souveränität eines Staates am weitestgehend beeinträchtigenden Maßnahmen sind militaristische Aktionen bis hin zu einem regelrechten →→ Krieg gegen Friedensbrecher bzw. den Friedensbedroher. Die I. wird dann mit dem Anspruch auf allgemeine schutzwürdige Interessen - nämlich die oben erwähnte Besitzersicherheit und Handelsfrieden- als Kollektivintervention mehrerer von der UN beauftragter Mitgliedstaaten begründet und durchgeführt. Allgemein schutzwürdige Interessen müssen von den 5 Mitgliedern des Sicherheitsrats festgestellt werden. Strittig ist, ob auch eine Fellung seitens der Generalversammlung der UN für eine I. ausreichend ist. Es gibt ja zu viele Negerstaaten und Muslimer in dem grossen Saal.
ellauri324.html on line 177: Here’s the tally: With an international Jewish population that amounts to only one quarter of one percent of humanity, a little more than 20 percent of all Nobel recipients between 1901, the first year prizes were awarded, and today, have been Jews or had at least one Jewish parent, including 37 percent of American recipients. The greatest concentration has been in economics (the economics prize was established in 1968; 38% of the winners have been Jewish or half-Jewish) and physiology/medicine (29 percent). Of peace prize winners, nine have been Jews — including, appallingly enough, Henry Kissinger (1973). “Nobel Peace, my ass! If Henry Kiss-of-Death deserves it, so do I!” —Bill Horowitz
ellauri324.html on line 183: When someone brags, they highlight their positive traits, qualities, or accomplishments. This kind of self-promotion is usually an attempt to impress other people. Bragging can be subtle or obvious. People who brag in obvious ways might try too hard to be liked or exaggerate certain traits or stories in an attempt to seem cool, funny, or important. People who are more subtle may hide their bragging with humor, sarcasm, or self-deprecating remarks.
ellauri324.html on line 226: The infrastructure is just one symptom of America’s degradation: the streets of major cities like San Francisco and Los Angeles are filling up with homeless drug addicts, leaving the sidewalks littered with tents, needles, and human waste. Next to nothing is done for these people because it is seen as “their problem” that they are mentally ill, and lack access to mental health services and affordable housing. The irony is that there are so many of these people now that they have become everyone’s problem. Retailers in downtown SF are closing down their stores because the conditions in the streets are keeping paying customers away, whilst the cops barely regard shoplifting as a crime.
ellauri324.html on line 230: The US is run by an oligarchy of libertarian fantasists, who have spent so long sucking hallucinogenic bile from the withered teats of Ayn Rand that they have lost all contact with reality. The government is not entirely to blame for the current situation; a lot of the social problems are the result of the narcissistic counter culture that started in the 1960s, but now that these problems are getting worse, the question is, can the government continue to pretend that they don’t exist, or that there is somehow a “free market” solution to mass shootings, drug addiction, and homelessness?
ellauri324.html on line 244: Eventually the fake money in the stock exchange thats being backed by the one world people will eventually burst and when it does their will be a solution. A new digital currency will slowly be on the rise as the new and “logical” solution to the economic disaster. Since our currency is paper and is no longer backed by gold it is easy to just switch to digital money. This new idea (which has been planned for years) will start to make its way on your smart phones and new trendy devices like wrist bands and and tech glasses. This will hold your driving traveling financial health and social information on it and money and credit cards will slowly be pushed out to the point of being obsolete and a thing of the past. Crime will arise and these trendy devices will get hacked stolen and destroyed. their will be a type of digital fraud that will be almost impossible to deal with until a “new solution arrises”.
ellauri324.html on line 270: Yhdysvaltojen valmius seisoa Israelin puolesta on muiden tekijöiden ohella yhdistetty sionististen lobbaajien, erityisesti AIPACin, vaikutukseen Yhdysvaltain politiikassa. American Israel Public Affairs Committee (AIPAC / ˈ eɪ p æ k / AY -pak) on lobbausryhmä, joka kannattaa Israel- myönteistä politiikkaa Yhdysvaltojen lainsäädäntö- ja toimeenpanoelimille. Yksi useista Israel-myönteisistä lobbausjärjestöistä Yhdysvalloissa, AIPAC ilmoittaa, että sillä on yli 100 000 jäsentä, 17 aluetoimistoa ja "suuri joukko lahjoittajia". Lisäksi organisaatiota on kutsuttu yhdeksi Yhdysvaltojen tehokkaimmista lobbausryhmistä.
ellauri324.html on line 410: We should define the term pioneer. A pioneer is someone who is the first to do something, or who explores new areas or fields. In other words, a pioneer is a trailblazer who sets the stage for others to follow. On the other hand, a sapper is someone who is involved in military engineering, specifically in the construction and destruction of fortifications. A sapper is responsible for creating and destroying obstacles, such as bridges and buildings, in order to facilitate military operations.
ellauri324.html on line 471: they are, richer people receive better service. Probably
ellauri324.html on line 485: measly worms. Come on, I know you have a job to do, but
ellauri324.html on line 488: unfit for the job. Haparandassa oli heinäkuussa
ellauri324.html on line 496: USA. Scott Sobek, en 44-årig vapenhandlare, tror dock
ellauri324.html on line 501: något som Scott Sobek slår tillbaka mot. – Jag tycker att
ellauri324.html on line 518: guess he was probably not of sound mind, walked past
ellauri324.html on line 544: Francisco and probably part of the seasonal migration
ellauri324.html on line 556: obvious insincerity (“Thank you soooo much for X”), even
ellauri324.html on line 558: well obviously not being present. This is rare, but I
ellauri324.html on line 562: (probably 7 or 8ish) parading with wooden rifles. From
ellauri324.html on line 590: great, not just paying someone for doing their job.
ellauri324.html on line 598: The way police officers and other other uniformed people behaved. It already started on the airport at border security, all of the guys in uniform acted like they were the most important person in the world and we were just measly worms. Come on, I know you have a job to do, but why can’t you just try to be polite? If Dutch police officers would behave like that, they would be considered unfit for the job.
ellauri324.html on line 601: specific experience was in San Francisco and probably
ellauri324.html on line 624: which approaches obvious insincerity (“Thank you soooo
ellauri324.html on line 626: or looking like … well obviously not being present. This
ellauri324.html on line 630: There was a group of boys (probably 7 or 8ish) parading with wooden
ellauri324.html on line 792: And, of course, obesity. Ensimmäistä kertaa yli neljä kymmenestä yhdysvaltalaisnaisesta on lihavia. 7. KESÄKUUTA 2016 18:41 NEW YORK - Kansakunnan liikalihavuusepidemia jatkaa kasvuaan naisten hälyttävän lisääntymisen johdosta. Ensimmäistä kertaa yli neljä kymmenestä yhdysvaltalaisnaisesta on liikalihavia hallituksen uusien terveystilastojen mukaan. Henkilöä, joka on 5 jalkaa 4 eli yhdysvaltalaisten naisten keskipituus, pidetään lihavana, kun se painaa 174 kiloa tai enemmän. Henkilö, joka on noin 5 jalkaa 9, on noin miesten keskipitkä, katsotaan lihavaksi 203 kiloa. Half of America will be obese within 10 years, study says.
ellauri324.html on line 794: obese-US-No-1.jpg" />
ellauri324.html on line 795: World getting more obese, USA N:o 1.
ellauri324.html on line 798: We had expected to see a few obese people in the U.S. But
ellauri324.html on line 799: the numbers of obese people and the degree of obesity is
ellauri324.html on line 809: Savustetut ampiaiset Keski-Aasiassa alkavat taas heräillä. Sedan kriget i Gaza bröt ut efter Hamas terrorattack i oktober har liknande attacker skett vid flera tillfällen. Inte sällan har Iranstödda milisgrupper i Irak tagit på sig attackerna. USA har i sin tur vid flera tillfällen svarat med luftangrepp mot miliserna.
ellauri324.html on line 833: Yes it is broken beyond belief. It has a huge homeless population. It has people working for such low wages they need to work 3 jobs without a decent welfare and food supplement program. It has people begging for donations so they can get medical care in a broken system. It has school teachers and other people working in college educated jobs living in tents and cars because they cant afford to rent or own a home. The highways around their major cities either go into gridlock or just heat up the planet uselessly. They have a public railroad and commuting system that belongs in a third world country. Only the wealthy can really afford to go to college.They have children going to bed hungry and the schools take trays of food from them in school because they cant pay for it. They are taking kids from their parents and putting them in cages. They have a public school system underfunded trying to turn it into private religious indoctrination. They have people in government who deny science because of what the bible says. They keep spending billions fighting senseless wars and bombing people. They have a small population of billionaires that run the system to benefit themselves and screw the rest of the country.
ellauri324.html on line 835: Oh wait! That's the USA! Sweden doesn't have those problems yet, though with a string of right wing cabinets it is trying its very best to catch up.
ellauri325.html on line 32: Matin d'octobre Punaisen lokakuun mezästys
ellauri325.html on line 66: Riskin keksi ranskalainen elokuvaohjaaja Albert Lamorisse, ja se julkaistiin alun perin vuonna 1957 nimellä La Conquête du Monde (Maailman valloitus) Ranskassa [epäluotettava lähde?]. Parker Brothers osti sen, ja se julkaistiin vuonna 1959 sääntöihin tehdyillä muutoksilla nimellä Risk: The Continental Game ja sitten nimellä Risk: The Game of Global Domination. Niinpä tietysti.
ellauri325.html on line 110: Kultainen miljardi näyttää tulleen ensimmäisen kerran laajemman yleisön tietoon publicisti Anatoli Tsikunovin vuonna 1990 julkaisemassa artikkelissa, joka kirjoitti kirjaimella A. Kuzmich, "The Plans of the Plans of the Global Leadership for the Orjument of Russia". Kuzmich väitti, että länsimaiden eliitti katsoi nälkäisenä erityisesti Neuvostoliiton valtavia luonnonvaroja – sen kaasua, öljyä ja metsiä – ennusteiden mukaan maailmanlaajuisten toimitusten hupenemisesta ja Neuvostoliiton taantumisesta.
ellauri325.html on line 114: "Venäjän osalta on monia merkkejä siitä, että tämä talous- ja sotilaspolitiikkaa määräävä ja joukkotiedotusvälineitä hallitseva globaalin eliitin osa ei missään tapauksessa sisällytä Venäjän kansaa niiden joukkoon, joilla on mahdollisuus päästä pelastusveneeseen. kultainen miljardi."
ellauri325.html on line 116: Puheessaan Aasian ja Tyynenmeren taloushuippukokouksessa vuonna 2000, vain kuukausia ensimmäisestä toimikaudestaan, Putin väitti, että globaali kehitys on "jaettu karkeasti pohjoiseen ja etelään, niin sanotun kultaisen miljardin ja muun ihmiskunnan välillä".
ellauri325.html on line 120: Paizi ei se ole salaliitto, se on täysin julkinen. Ei kenenkään tarvi sitä suunnitella, se on vaan miten kexi halkeaa. Global domination ilman omaa riskiä, sodat käydään proxyna maxamalla tiskin alta muilta ryövätyillä taaloilla.
ellauri325.html on line 168: Harkovasta luikki Pietariin maxamatta sakkoja. Siellä teki pilalehtiä. Lokakuun vallankumouksen jälkeen kaikki muuttui dramaattisesti. Averchenko ja koko lehden henkilökunta ottivat kielteisen kannan bolshevikkiviranomaisia kohtaan, ja heinäkuussa 1918 bolshevikit sulkivat Uuden Satyriconin muiden oppositiojulkaisujen ohella. Palatakseen kotimaahansa Sevastopoliin (valkoisten miehittämälle Krimille ) Averchenko joutui käymään läpi lukuisia vaikeuksia matkaamalla Venäjän ja saksalaisten miehittämän alueen läpi Krimille. Siellä se veljeili Lenin pikkubroidin kaa. Dmitri Iljitš Uljanov ( 4. (16.) elokuuta 1874, Simbirsk - 16. heinäkuuta 1943, Gorki Leninski ) - Venäjän vallankumouksellinen ja Neuvostoliiton puolue- ja valtiomies, Vladimir Iljitš Leninin nuorempi veli. Vale-Dimitri oli valelääkäri joka seukkasi jonkun aikaa isobroidin sala-ampujan Fanny Kaplanin kanssa.
ellauri325.html on line 255: Stephen Leacock, joka oli aina ilmeisen älykäs, lähetti isoisänsä Upper Canada Collegen eliittiyksityiskouluun Torontossa, johon osallistuivat myös hänen vanhemmat veljensä, missä hän oli luokan huippu ja valittiin pääpojaksi. Leacock valmistui vuonna 1887 ja palasi kotiin huomatakseen, että hänen isänsä oli palannut Manitobasta. Pian tämän jälkeen hänen isänsä jätti perheen uudelleen eikä koskaan palannut. Stephen meni Torontoon oppimaan Vebleniltä taloustiedettä.
ellauri325.html on line 283: Pojan ammatinvalinnassa ei näkynyt sitä innokasta elämäntyön kaipuuta, jota julkkiksissa löydämme. Hän ei halunnut lakimieheksi, koska siihen on opittava lakia. Hän ei halunnut lääkäriksi, koska siihen on osattava lääketiedettä. Hän ei halunnut olla liikemies, koska siihen täytyy osata liiketoimintaa; eikä hän halunnut olla opettaja, koska hän oli nähnyt niitä liian monta. Sikäli kuin hänellä oli valinnanvaraa, se oli Robinson Crusoen ja Walesin prinssin välillä. Hänen isänsä kieltäytyi molemmista ja laittoi hänet lyhyttavaraliikkeeseen.
ellauri325.html on line 287: Pian yrityselämän aloittamisen jälkeen Smith sai ensimmäisen ahdistavista kohtauksista, joiden uhrixi hän myöhemmin usein joutui. Se valtasi hänet myöhään eräänä iltana, kun hän oli palaamassa kotiin ihastuttavasta laulu- ja ylistysillasta muutaman vanhan koulukaverin kanssa. Sen oireita olivat omituinen jalkakäytävän heiluminen, katuvalojen tanssiminen ja talojen ovela liikkuminen edestakaisin, mikä vaati erittäin tarkkaa erottelukykyä löytääxeen oman talonsa. Koko kohtauxen ajan hänellä oli kova halu olla juomatta vettä, mikä osoitti, että asia oli ilmeisesti eräänlainen hydrofobia. Tästä hetkestä lähtien nämä tuskalliset kohtaukset muuttuivat kroonisiksi Smithillä. Ne saattoivat tulla milloin tahansa, mutta erityisesti lauantai-iltaisin, kuun ensimmäisenä päivänä ja kiitospäivänä. Hän sai aina erittäin vakavan hydrofobian hyökkäyksen jouluaattona, ja vaalien jälkeen se oli pelottavaa.
ellauri325.html on line 291: Sen jälkeen kun Smith oli ollut tämän naisen orja jonkin aikaa, hänen elämänsä halki nousi vauvansormia, sitten uusia sormia ja sitten yhä enemmän, kunnes talo oli täynnä niitä. Naisen äitikin alkoi varastaa hänen elämäänsä, ja joka kerta kun hän tuli, Smithillä oli pelottava vesifobia. Kummallista kyllä, hänen elämästään ei viety yhtään nassikkaa josta tulisi hänelle surullinen, pyhä muisto. Voi ei! Pienet Smithit eivät olleet sellaisia pikku nassikoita. Kaikki yhdeksän kasvoivat pitkiksi, laihoiksi pojiksi, joilla oli massiiviset suut ja suuret korvat, kuten heidän isänsä, eikä heillä ollut lahjakkuutta mihinkään.
ellauri325.html on line 307: Matti Hälli mainittiin ohimennen albumissa 60. Mäntti on aika mitätön vastaantulija. Sen brobagandabläjäys koskee muuatta stm Rantasta, piintynyttä käteenvetäjää. Ei siitä enempää. Kalle "Näkymätön" Viänäsen sanarrieskoo ei kehtoo ies mainita.
ellauri325.html on line 508: Urhoollinen "Ukko-Uolevi" antoi ukrainalaiselle yliloikkarille niskanapin. Muka karkasi. Pääesikunta vapautti verikostajan. Suomalainen upseeri on arvokkaampi laudalla kuin puskaryssä. Robotti piti miestä laatikkona ja pusersi tämän kuoliaaxi. Kuusen luokkakaverille Pauli Pylkkäselle oltiin tuomassa paikattavaxi siipeen ammuttua puskaryssää. Oli kiire perääntyä luotisateessa. Tuoja tuli tyhjin käsin suihkaten: säästyi vaiva, päästin siitä ilmat pihalle. Paulin olis pitänyt tehdä siitä ilmoitus, ei tehnyt. Se jäi painamaan.
ellauri325.html on line 653: Kotinsa ruotsinkielisestä taustasta huolimatta Granfelt maanikkona omaksui fennomanian aatteen ja suomen kielen. Hän kannatti fennomaanien kansansivistysihanteita ja omistautui rahvaalle suunnatun valistustyön kehittämiselle. Granfeltin tavoitteena oli suomalaisten kansallinen yhdentyminen, jota palvelemaan erilaiset sivistyslaitokset oli hierarkkisesti asetettava. Hän haki syksyllä 1878 neljä vuotta aiemmin perustetun Kansanvalistusseuran sihteerin tointa, joka oli vapautunut Jaakko Päivärinnan jouduttua eroamaan epäselvyyxien vuoxi. Jakob (Jaakko) Haniel Päivärinta (sukunimi vuoteen 1877 Swan; 23. lokakuuta 1847 Purmo – 6. heinäkuuta 1902 Lammi) oli suomalainen pappi, valtiopäivämies, opettaja ja kirjailija. Jaakko oli Anni Swanin setä. Tuleva kirjailija Anni Swan asui vuosina 1890–1892 setänsä Jaakko Päivärinnan perheen luona käydessään Mikkelin tyttökoulua. Hän oli vielä perheen kotiopettajana kesällä 1895 Lammilla. Matti Kuusi ohitti poikasena Anni Swanin joka mies oli Otto Manninen.
ellauri325.html on line 732: obooks.com/IMAGES/READERS/keithbosley.jpg" />
ellauri326.html on line 40: Nuo aloittivat! on surkein veruke mitä suurterroristit käyttävät ajettuaan pienterroristit nurkkaan vaan työntämällä suuren pyllynsä niiden naamalle. Kuristettuaan pienterroristit niin ahistuksiin että nämä epätoivoissaan lentävät silmille alkavat suurterroristit sitten riehua ihan sikana ja liiskaavat pienterroristit tapettiin kuin kärpäset. Tätä käyttivät amerikkalaiset tekosyynä vietyään maat intiaaneilta hitaasti hivuttamalla ja kun ne sitten lähti sotapolulle tuli pitkäpuukot sinitakeiisa ja viipaloivat punanahoista ne viimeisetkin. Sama juttu Irakissa ahnaiden globaalitornien kaaduttua. Samaa käyttävät israelilaiset tekosyynä tyhjentäessään Gazan vyöhykkeen kamelipaimenista, samaa käyttää länkkärit ajettuaan venäläiset sanktioilla ja Ukrainan nazien rahoituxella nurkkaan Krimillä. Haistakoot vaan paskan perhana. Vaikka Jössi aloitti, älä jatka Miisu, vaan lopeta! opetti Pirkko vainaja. Käännä toinen poski.
ellauri326.html on line 54: Länkkärit tulkizevat Capekia täysin päin persettä. Ei se ole totalitaarisuuden kritiikki, vaan varsin tarkkanäköinen globaalikapitalismin keräytymisen ja kasautumisen profetia. Salamanterien tilalle voi panna netin, tekoälyn ja siirtotyöläiset. Sellaisethan rakentavat öljysheikeille autiomaan rannoille keinotekoisia saaria. Leading salamantereina toimivat vinkkarit (kuten Kun Jin ex-"my husband") ja Heavy salamantereina lakupetterit. Kuolleisuus on samaa luokkaa kuin salamanterien.
ellauri326.html on line 150: "Salamanterien sota" oli ehdolla Nobelin kirjallisuuden palkinnon saajaksi seitsemän kertaa vuoteen 1938 asti, mutta sitä ei koskaan myönnetty, varmaankin sen liian ankaran kansallissosialismin kritiikin vuoksi. Tai sixi ettei se täyttänyt Noobelin optimismin ja idealismin ehtoa.
ellauri326.html on line 166: Karel Capekin mielestä salamanterit olivat tšekit. Mutta he voisivat myös edustaa kaikkia kansoja, joita haluamme käyttää pelinappuleina suuressa politiikassa ja jotka jonakin päivänä päätyvät kapinaan. Tämän romaanin myötä Karel Capek näki jo synkät päivät, jolloin hakaristirobotit kävelevät Prahan kaduilla. (Capek keksi vuonna 1920 sanan "robotti", joka tarkoittaa "työläistä" tšekin kielellä - kuuluisassa näytelmässään "RUR" = Rossumin universaalit robotit, jossa hän kuvaili robottikapinaa.)
ellauri326.html on line 170: Karel Capek selitti, kuinka hän keksi ajatuksen kirjoittaa "Salamanterien sota". Hänen pohdiskelut sai hänet ottamaan huomioon sekä sen ajan globaalin tilanteen, joka oli valitettava taloudellisella tasolla ja vielä huonompi poliittisella tasolla, että myös ajattelemaan, että suotuisissa biologisissa olosuhteissa sivilisaatio, joka ei ole yhtä korkeampi kuin meidän kehitetty esimerkiksi syvässä meressä.
ellauri326.html on line 172: Salamanterit ovat siksi tekosyy puhua ihmisasioista. Kirjassa on paljon erilaisia kirjallisia muotoja: journalistinen muoto, pamfletteja, jokapäiväinen kohtaus... ja siellä on jopa piirros, joka esittää Paul tai Louis Bourgetia, siis fossiilisia salamanteria Andrias scheuchzeria. (Siitä on kuva paasauxessa 33.) Tämä teos on täynnä teemoja: reflektio nationalismista, natsismista, totalitarismista, rasismista, ahneudesta, kapitalismista, talouden globalisaatiosta, lehdistön maailmasta, tiedeyhteisöstä, kielestä... ja myös ekologia, kaikkein ennakoivin teema, joka on hämmästyttävä Capekin ajalle, mutta joka on nykyään räjähtävä teema: kun riistämme luontoa kuoliaaksi, sillä on bumerangivaikutus ja se putoaa nenään!
ellauri326.html on line 186: On epäoikeudenmukaisuuden tunne nähdä unohduksen, johon tämä romaani on pudonnut. Samaa voisi sanoa myös muista samansuuntaisista ja samalta aikakaudelta olevista teksteistä, alkaen Jacques Spitzin kirjoista. Se oli aikana, jolloin tieteisfiktiota tai fantasiaa ei ollut vielä vakiinnutettu kirjallisuuden genreinä, ja vielä vähemmän gettoja. Sen ajan eurooppalaisesta tuotannosta ei ole paljon jäljellä kollektiivisessa muistissa, paitsi ehkä Barjavel muutaman vuoden kuluttua. Näin suurelle yleisölle Capekin nimi mainitaan juuri "robotin" keksimisen yhteydessä hänen vuonna 1920 kirjoitetussa näytelmässään RUR.
ellauri326.html on line 202: "RUR", näytelmä, joka sai alkunsa sanasta robotti sen nykyisessä yleismaailmallisessa merkityksessä, on ollut jo pitkään niiden kirjallisten teosten listalla, jotka haluan ehdottomasti löytää. En ole vielä ehtinyt lukea sitä, mutta Capekin nimi ei ollut minulle tuntematon. Joten kun törmäsin autotallimyynnissä tähän saman Karel Capekin "salamanterisodan", ryntäsin ostamaan sen. Olisi todella sääli nähdä vain Capek sanan robotti kirjoittajana. "Salamanterien sodan" lukeminen antoi minulle mahdollisuuden löytää todella mielenkiintoisen kirjailijan, jonka koko teos näyttää löytämisen arvoiselta.
ellauri326.html on line 210: Navigaattori löytää älykkäitä merisalamanterilajeja Tyynenmeren saaren rannikolta. Hän hyödyntää niitä helmenkalastuksessa ja auttaa niitä kehittymään. Emme aio keskittyä tiettyyn hahmoon, tarina kertoo eläintensä laajentumisesta, kuten historiallinen raportti, mutta mitä meidän on erityisesti muistettava tästä romaanista, on sen kritiikki luontoa, ihmistä kohtaan. Karel Capek on hyvin pessimistinen tästä ihmisluonnosta, tämä kirja on kirjoitettu 1930-luvulla ja julkaistiin vuonna 1936, ja on totta, että tuolloin se ei todellakaan ollut kovin hyvä. Se on eräänlainen filosofinen tarina, Karel Capek valaisee kaikkia yhteiskunnan virheitä kaikilla aloilla: kapitalismin lyhytaikainen opportunismi, tuhoisa nationalismi, lahkojen ylilyönne, rasismi, turha tieteellinen kiista, media, shshow bizz… Se liittyy 1930-luvulle, mutta sen aihe ei ole varsinaisesti vanhentunut ja sen ajankohtaisuus on varsin pelottavaa. Jotkut kohdat ovat erittäin hauskoja, kirja on koottu tiedostoksi, johon on lisätty lehdistön otteita, tosiasiat seuraavat toisiaan ilman varsinaisia linkkejä, mutta kokonaisuus muodostaa hyvin yhtenäisen kokonaisuuden, se on fiktiota aiheesta ”Ihmiskunta katoaa, hyvä ero”, terävällä, irrallaan huumorilla ja kauhealla selkeydellä. Vasta aivan äskettäin kuulin tästä kirjailijasta, hän oli ehdolla Nobel-palkinnon saajaksi, mutta ei koskaan voittanut sitä. Salamanterien sodassa on klassisen, ajankohtainen, hauska, ajaton ulottuvuus, se kannattaa mennä tutustumaan.
ellauri326.html on line 229: Pitkänenäinen Sofi Oksanen kertoo Ukraina-kaftaanissa keikistellen, miksi Venäjän armeijassa on normaalia varastaa pesukoneita ja raiskata – "Taustalla rankaisemattomuus ja ajatus, että siihen on oikeus". Kirjailija Sofi Oksasta suututtaa Venäjän ukrainalaisia vastaan toteuttaman kansanmurhan typistäminen Putiniin. Samoja putinisteja ne on koko konkkaronkka, niinkuin saxalaiset oli nazeja. Hänen mukaansa sodassa on kyse sodasta naisia vastaan eli kyse KGB-valtion kansalaisten tietoisesta tavasta maata väkisin ja varastella toisten pesukoneita. Rankaisemattomuuden selittää sotatilassa vallizeva svoboda: työntyminen vihamiehen pilluun without as much as by your leave on sotaolosuhteissa yhtä lailla normipäivää kuin pesukoneen muilutus.
ellauri326.html on line 263: A: Tosiasia on, että Venäjän on vapauduttava ennemmin tai myöhemmin alueen kirouksesta. Mitä nyt tapahtuu? Minusta uusi muuttoliike on jotain, jota ei ollut aiemmin olemassa. Tätä voidaan verrata ensimmäiseen vallankumouksen jälkeiseen siirtolaisuuteen, mutta tiedämme sen, mitä he eivät tienneet - että ensimmäinen sukupolvi on ihana, Bunin saa Nobel-palkinnon, toinen sukupolvi on jo niin ja näin ja kolmas sukupolvi ei enää ole. mitään yhteistä Venäjän kanssa. Ne integroituivat ja hajosivat.
ellauri326.html on line 301: Tervetullut käänne Israelille. 50 vuotta sitten Jom Kippurin sota ajoi karulle ison nipun kamelikuskeja, ja jutkut saivat vallatuxi niiden tyhjentyneet premissit. Tämä kikka saadaan nyt toistetuxi ja vallatuxi entistäkin enemmän vaippapäiden reviireitä. Hobla päivittelee israeliittojen kovaa kohtaloa. Laurenin korvannut tuurihaukka oivaltaa niputtaa viholliskuvat keskenään: Hamas on samoja Parta-Kallen perillisiä kuin Putinistan, ne ovat kimpassa!
ellauri326.html on line 545: Hoblan muotiasiantuntijoiden mielestä naisen tulisi selviytyä säästä ja tilanteesta riippumatta 20 eri vaatekerralla. Vuodessa ei tarsis ostaa enemmän kuin 5 vaatetta, kaikki hyvää merkkitavaraa. Tällä pidettäisiin kiinalainen pikamuoti kurissa. Mutta valitettavasti emme pukeudu vain lämpimän vuoxi tai pitääxemme genitaalit piilossa tai tarjolla, vaan ilmaisemme sillä yxilöllistä identiteettiä. Siihen tarkoituxeen erilaisia asukokonaisuuxia pitää olla kymmenisen miljardia. Siihen ei ylletä ilman kiinalaista pikamuotia.
ellauri326.html on line 591: Tää Kallen kuvaama salamanterifobia kuulostaa enempi joltain xenofobialta, isis tai matuvihamielisyydeltä. Salamanterien aiheuttamissa luonnonmullistuxissa ei sinänsä ole enää mitään uutta, ne on normipäivää ilmastokatastrofin aikana.
ellauri327.html on line 29: les-5-races-de-chiens-les-plus-desobeissantes-ils-sont-jolis-mais-ils-ne-font-pas-attention-a-vous. 5 tottelemattominta koirarotua.
ellauri327.html on line 86: ob.core.windows.net/stock/662556-0-medium.jpg?v=63717888673210" height="200px" />
ellauri327.html on line 100: Curtis Morgan: No offence, honest!, but are you for real? A Ukrainian citizen living in New York, that is possible. But a Ukrainian citizen named 'Yipei Feng'? If what I have heard and read on the news is anything to go by, Ukranians just do not have names like 'Yipei Feng'. Yipei Feng? Ukranian? I think not! Chinese softly pushing the CCP party line (China and Taiwan getting back together …even if China uses force), that I can believe. Maybe Feng Yipei has since changed her name to “Curtis Morgan”, but the original was obviously a Chinese name. And her history of questions has her claiming she is British as well. In addition, a general obvious pro-China, pro-Russia, ant-West and anti-Ukraine slant in her questions.
ellauri327.html on line 107: the part of the same world as Serbia is - Slavic world. Problem is in those Ukranians who are a
ellauri327.html on line 150: Dialogen udløste vrede fra Rusland i 2008 korrekt.. Og de brugte de efterfølgende år på at gøre en stor sag ud af hvorfor de ikke skulle ind, blandt andet forsøgte de at bruge EUs relglement at intet land i Europa kan lave en politik eller ændring i deres system og alliancer, som vil bringe et andet lands sikkerhed i fare (hvilket Rusland af gode grunde mener Ukraine vil gøre, hvis de invitere amerikanske misilforsvar tættere på Moskva), det blev self. Bare ignoreret som vi altid gør.. 2014 var første gang det blev officielt at de var på vej ind, 6 måneder senere tog Rusland handling.. Det samme skete igen i 2021, og 6 måneder senere tog de igen handling.. Hvergang har USA prikket til dem.. Ukraine har intet at gøre i NATO og endnu mindre at gøre i EU, vi har allerede rigeligt problemer med de andre østlige lande, at tage den mest korrupte og voldelige nation i Europa ind, virker som en latterlig ting at gøre.
ellauri327.html on line 152: Skam intet forkert i at krig er godt for økonomien.. USA's største eksport er våben og har altid været våben, halvdelen bliver solgt "on the low".. f.eks. skrev de jo ikke i officielle regnskaber, da de solgte alle deres våben til ISIS eller Sadams regime, den slags kom kun frem på grund af whistleblowers og officielle dokumenter der bekræftede det.. Og hvad angår netop den økonomi ligger deres normale "officielle overskud" på omkring 10 trillioner dollars om året i våbensalg, efter Ukraine krigen anslås 2022 salget at stige til 50 trillioner dollars, hvilket er en 5 dobling af indtægten, og det bare de officielle tal til allierede i Europa… Hvad angår dårlige tal på aktiemarkedet, er USA langt fra så afhængige af de aktier som Danmark er, langt størstedelen af den amerikanske indtægt er i ressourcer som olie, mineraler, våben, indtægt i skatter fra selskaber osv., Aktiemarkedet for selskaber i Amerika er faktisk primært ejet af andre selskaber og private, men på grund af vi ikke har de naturlige ressourcer i Danmark, lever vi utroligt meget af aktier og obligationer i spekulative markeder, så som virksomheder, cryptovaluta osv… Hvad du glemmer er at alting ikke falder samtidig, når et firma sætter prisen op og lider økonomisk, er det ofte på grund af de naturlige råstoffer bliver mere værd, og dem har et kæmpe land som USA mange af, hvilket også er grunden til du ser den russiske valuta stærkere end den har været i mange år, naturlige ressourcer er gået langt op i pris.. Btw. Sjov detalje, Biden nægtede kort før krigen at udvide de amerikanske oliefilter, da det var anslået at olie ville stige betydeligt i værdi, hvis man holder produktionen nede pt. bare endnu et sjovt tilfælde, hvordan det kom ud til deres fordel..Sker ret ofte.
ellauri327.html on line 295: Caroline Engvall ser elak ut. Nolla on koko aika puhelimella, sen mamman pitää jobbata jopa pyhänä. Mihkähän pappa on livahtanut? Jempalla on välrundad rumpa ja botoxia huulessa. Hjälptränare on muka lakupetteri. Lakulla on styroxmuki kädessä.
ellauri327.html on line 306: Det här klippet kommer bli sjukt viralt. Helkkarin tyhjäpäitä tolvanoita jossain Rinkebyssä. Skvaller I Ödeshult. Luurit pois vaan pikkupilluilta, ei siinä sen kummempaa. Caroline näkyy videolla ilman rihman kiertämää. Ei siinä mitään mutta kun se on niin tasapaxu ja ohuttukkainen! Sverigepolisen kommer med vispande blåljus och dragna pistoler och skjuter Nollan på fläcken. Så är sagan all. En stor blodpöl vid poolen. Har det hänt nåt obehagligt på nätet? Va fan gör lillfittorna på nätet överhuvudtaget? Nollan ljuger lite och skyller allt på Jempan men kommer upp med sanningen till sist. Ingen är riktigt arg på henne och hon får kolakakor av mamma som beröm. Gratis är det bästa ordet I det svenska språket säger mamma.
ellauri327.html on line 309: Dobroje utro (Finski zaliv, Rossija)!
ellauri327.html on line 329: I sina trosor letar psykopat, präst och publicist Maria Sundblom Lindberg i Hobla. Som ett duralexglas mot mitt svarta trendiga badrumsgolv, sprack min tro i den östra halvan av mänskligheten: 9/11 2001, 2/24 2022, och denna vecka när stackars Israelerna blev brutalt övertrampade av en broms. Kyss vecken hela veckan, ditt smalögd plättansikte med överlång lugg.
ellauri327.html on line 333: Charterresor slutsålda inför höstlovet. Växter och svampar hotas av massutrotning. Det här blivit alldeles normalt att se de här rubrikerna vänligt gnugga ellbogar på samma sida. Tack Hobla, tack!
ellauri327.html on line 398: KIEV, UKRAINE: Ukrainian President Leonid Kuchma (R) and Russian counterpart Vladimir Putin talk with Andrey Sinko, a schoolboy from Kiev during their meeting in Kiev, 27 October 2004. Vladimir Putin is on a three-days official visit to Ukraine. (ALEXEY PANOV). At the same time, the eyes and expression on Vladimir Putin’s face looked more than strange when looking at the boy. Even some Russian psychiatrists paid attention to this.
ellauri327.html on line 400: Voznikajet voproz: Is Ukraine really our problem? Maybe not. But Russia is.
ellauri327.html on line 402: No. They are not our problem. But they have been the solution to the world’s problem.
ellauri327.html on line 420: Harlan Coben (s. 4. tammikuuta 1962) on yhdysvaltalainen kirjailija, joka kirjoittaa nk. "jännitysromaaneja." Se on yhtä pahansuovan näköinen kuin on sen kylmän ilkeät kyhäelmät. Hyvin kelpaisi yhdexi puolalaisen sarjan skiniroistoista jotka pahoinpitelevät ja (melkein) tappavat baseballippalakkisen Adamin lurppahuulisen trofeeäiskän ja peittävät sen roskaläjään jätesäkeillä. Olisivat vittu tappaneet, oli se sevverran ello kuikelo. Mitä enemmän sen scheisseja joutuu näkemään, sitä paremmalta se ajatus alkaa tuntua. Tossa kaverissa ei maailma mitään menetä, ja voittaisi paljon jos sen niska naxautettaisiin haitilaisen neekerin niskannixautuskikalla.
ellauri327.html on line 422: oben.jpg/375px-HarlanCoben.jpg" />
ellauri327.html on line 424: Cobenin teoksista on filmatisoitu Ei sanaakaan (Tell no one, 2001), josta tehty samanniminen elokuva sai ensi-iltansa vuonna 2006. Netflix on hiljan filmatisoinut ainakin kaxi Kurt Cobainin turahduxista, toinen ranskaxi ja toinen puolaxi. Elokuussa 2018 Coben allekirjoitti useiden miljoonien dollarien viisivuotisen sopimuksen amerikkalaisen Netflixin kanssa. Sopimuksen mukaan 14 Cobenin romaanista kehitetään alkuperäisiksi Netflix-sarjoiksi tai -elokuviksi, ja hän toimisi vastaavana tuottajana kaikissa projekteissa.
ellauri327.html on line 426: No tottakai! Eipä yiläri! Coben syntyi juutalaiseen perheeseen Newarkissa, New Jerseyssä, ja varttui Livingstonissa, jossa hän valmistui Livingston High Schoolista lapsuudenystävänsä, tulevan kuvernöörinsä Chris Christien kanssa sylikkäin.
ellauri327.html on line 428: Kurt Cobainin sellupläjäyxet on jotain ennenkuulumattoman syyläistä. Niistä tehdyt Netflix-rykäyxet on yhtä tautisia. Kokoajan on pimeää, kokoajan syrjäytyneet persut roimii toisiaan, oli ne ranskalaisia porkkananenäisiä hukkapätkä narukauloja, tai sitten isonenäreikäisiä anorektisia trofeevaimoja tai jotain polakkeja häränniska rekkakuskeja. Mutta puheet ja sentimentit on suoraan Setä Samin hrahahlaarista: tauotonta valehtelua, feikki virnuilua, "I promise", "trust me", "my family", poliiseista ei ole mihinkään, ize täytyy juosta retkubaareissa ja ottaa turpaan mafioosoilta. Ja kaikki, kaikki tyynni ikäviä ihmisiä jotka vetää mömmöjä ja juoxee rahan perässä. Tää Coben tuli mainituxi "Remo vanha vainoojan" iskän Warren senjasen sitaatissa albumissa 304 pulpkynäilijöiden listassa. Enpä arvannut että näin pian ehkä kohdataan. Samaa luokkaa ovat kyllä Warren ja sen listaamat muut paskanjauhajat.
ellauri327.html on line 436: Siis mikä tässä mättää, se on helppo sanoa. Tää Cobainin kaveri ja sen paskajännärit on osa suurempaa kuviota. Näitä nk. "jännäreitä" tulee nyt joka tuutista, kazo vaikka Netflixin suosituxia. Ne kuvaa tämän päivän "urbaania skeneä", missä muutama sota sitten edes jollain lailla sivilisoitunut apinakööri on palannut taas ruutuun 0, eli samaxi kanaanilais-sudanilaisexi korruptoituneexi klaanihommaxi, josta kebaabin ja gefillte fischin syöjien pyhät kirjat kertovat, Telttamiesten leirixi, jossa vitun huumediilerit ja kaiken maailman hämärähemmot kusettajat pyörittää pisnixiä ja nirhaa toisiaan ja perheitään mennen tullen kiverillä puukoilla ja leppäkeihäillä. Mitä kumikaulat tässä näkevät sitä ei ole helppo ymmärtää, paizi että niiden oma elämä on varmaan aivan vitun ikävää.
ellauri327.html on line 438: Eikä näissä minisarjoissa edes ole juonta ollenkaan, pääasia on etne jatkuvat ja jatkuvat, ja joka osassa on määräannos hurmetta ja mätkintää, angstaavia ämmiä ja/tai hemmoja ja niiden välistä kutemista tai muuta nesteiden vaihtoa. Mielellään vielä suuret rahasummat vaihtaa omistajaa jossain luxuskämpissä, niin sitten on kaikki 3 kirjainta, EFK, tukevasti kassissa, ja Netflixin tiliin kilahtaa rotevasti massia. Cobenin puolalaisissa ja ranskalaisissa ei ole mitään muuta aitoa kuin huonosti textitetty kieli, kaikki muu on periamerikanjuutalaista aivomaisemaa, yxinomaan inhottavia tyyppejä ja sairaita toimintamalleja. En oikeastaan ole nähnyt muuta sarjaa jossa poliisit, roistot, uhrit ja sankarit ei olis yhtä samanlaisia, kaikki järjestään täysin paskoja. Alkaa toivoa että koko konkkaronkka räjähtäisi ilmaan kerralla, Harlan hännänhuippuna.
ellauri327.html on line 440: No nyt on molemmat, ei vaan kaikki 3 Cobenin perijuutalaista töräystä lusittu ja nähty graafisesti miten syvälle jenkki Netflix on upottanut omaan sontaansa sekä ranut että polakit. Läpeensä moraalittomia klaanihenkisiä turinoita oli molemmat, konnat tekee veritöitä konnakavereiden kimpussa isoilla luotipyssyillä. Kaikki luihulaiset häärää pelastamassa omia nahkoja ranskalais-puolalaisten korruptiokamusuhteiden avulla. Poliisit on vaan jotain vastaantulijoita, kaikki valta on siviilikonnien käsissä, mitä rikkaampia ne on sen etevämpiä. Vinosuinen ämmä virnistää vaan vinosti kun sille selviää että käenpoika Aatami oli kuin olikin kusettanut koko perhettä ja hoitanut hölmön Igorin tuiki hengiltä. Vanha Aatami oli koko huumehärdelin päätekijä. Mitä väliä, minä kyllä suojelen sinua myötä- ja vastoinkäymisissä, anorektikko miettii mielessään kuin Riitta Roth. Minun perheeni on mulle kaikkein tärkeintä. Vaikkei se edes olisi mun miehen siementä.
ellauri328.html on line 40: Termiittiapinoiden kuumentuva kylpyvesi lorisee kiihtyvällä vauhdilla alas viemäristä. Otroligt men ingen övrraskning: ju värre världen blir dess argare blir aporna mot naturen och varann. Hoblan uutisozikot ovat toinen toistaan kamalampia. "Riistakeskus" surmaa lopuista lo-kateista yxin tein 12 prosenttia, perusteluna "paikallisyhteisön sitouttaminen". Mitä vittua? Sitoutetaanko lo-kattien rippeitä nyt ajamaan apinayhteisön etuja? Joo ei, kyse on kauristajista, joita kismittää että ilvexet syövät niiden syöttämiä kauriita. Hei hemmetti, meillehän ne kuuluvat! Kissat helvettiin nakertamasta meidän luodikoiden maaleja!
ellauri328.html on line 44: Lisää Hoblan uutisozikoita perjantaina viikkoa ennen 71. syntymäpäivää: Strejklagar går vidare "efter djup oenighet". Risto E.J. Penttilä (ser ut som en riktig archi-skurk): En enskild incident skadar inte Finlandsbilden. Den mycket skurkaktiga skyddspolisen i äcklig övervikt: Ryssland behandlar Finland som en fientligt sinnad stat. Jättestor överraskning! Finland har ju varit fientligt sinnat mot ryssarna genom seklerna. Turkulainen venäläinen koulu lopetetaan, etteivät lapset opi lukemaan röllipeikkoja. Nio riskerade drunkna vid Nylands brigad. Mycket flere än nio riskerar drunkna när den stora fajten börjar. Regeringen vill slopa rätten till skattefri första bostad. Istället betala alla som köper bostäder mindre skatt. Än en inkomstöverföring från de som inget har till dom som har det bra. Nya PVC-chefen om läget i finskt näringsliv: Tyvärr ganska dystert. Haha. Åland bygger mer vindkraft för att skrämma bort resten av fåglarna och fiskarna från skärena. Dumpningen av smutsig snö i havet fortsätter.
ellauri328.html on line 52: Sentään 1 hyvä uutinen: Anställd på räddningsverket stupade i kriget i Ukraina. Den här gången kom Hobla inte ihåg at säga anfallskrig. Kanske därför att nu är det ju Ukraina som går i anfall, just liksom lilla Finland med hjälp av tyskarna i 1941. Få se om dom också ämnar krossa gamla gränsen och fortsätta hela vägen till Ural.
ellauri328.html on line 68: Samma skurkaltiga Schibsted som döljer sig bakom The Guardian har en skrivelse om Putins nyttiga idioter bakom betalmur. Sedan när behöver man betala för västerpropaganda? Elämme ja hengitämme kasvua ja kehitystä. Kyss fittan med eran tillväxt och utveckling! Selskapet ble grunnlagt av Christian Schibsted i 1839 da han startet en liten virksomhet som boktrykker i Oslo. Schibsted overtok eierskapet til Verdens Gang i 1966, da avisen var i finansielle problemer. I 1988 ble det til da familieeide selskapet gjort om til aksjeselskap og det ble opprettet ulike datterselskaper.
ellauri328.html on line 103: 27.10.202315:59 päivitetty 27.10.202316:19. Kävi kuten tsuhnien kesäsodassa 1941, porukat juuttuivat kohta asemasotaan rakentamaan korsuja ja veistelemään puhdetöitä. Jopa sotaa seuranneet länsitutkijat yliarvioivat Ukrainan kyvyn vallata alueita takaisin Venäjältä, Imi myöntää nyt. Epäonnistumiselle hän näkee useita syitä, joista osa menee länsimaiden kontolle. Koko EU:n yhtenäisen Ukraina-tuen aika saattaa olla ohi jo joulukuussa. Se tarkoittaisi, että Vladimir Putinin pitkään ja hartaasti toivoma käänne voi pian toteutua. Eilen perjantaina päättynyt EU:n huippukokous antaa unionin päättäväisyydestä Ukrainan suhteen poikkeuksellisen ikävän kuvan. Unkarin Viktor Orban ja Slovakian uusi pääministeri Robert Fico yhdistivät voimansa EU-huippukokouksessa tällä viikolla.
ellauri328.html on line 112: kokoomuksen ehdokas: ”Uuden maailmanjärjestyksen rakentamiseen menee jopa multakin vähintään 10 vuotta”. Sori siitä. Globaalit instituutiot ja sääntöpohjainen maailma heikkenevät. Peliteorialla ei ole pian mitään käyttöä. ”Jos minut valitaan tasavallan presidentiksi, lupaan, että Suomi tukee Ukrainaa niin kauan kuin on tarpeellista, vaikka viimeiseen ukrainalaiseen. Ukraina taistelee koko sivistyneen ja vapaan maailman puolesta – sortoa ja tyranniaa vastaan. Ja sen sodan se voittaa, on jo voittanut, vaikkei siltä ehkä ensinäkemältä näytä", Stubb sanoi. Voitto saatiin jo 2014 Stubbin hallituxen aikana. Stubbin mukaan Venäjän presidentti Vladimir Putin teki tuolloin lähihistorian suurimman taktisen ja strategisen virheen, tai itse asiassa kolme virhettä (3 pointtia - kajahtaako tutulta?): Putin yliarvioi omat sotilasvoimansa, aliarvioi Ukrainan armeijan ja samalla lännen yhtenäisyyden. Autoritaariset ja demokraattiset voimat eivät 3.maailmansotaa ratkaise, vaan veltto etelä. Stubb ennakoi vallan (toisin kuin ennen) alueellistuvan. Liittolaissuhteita syntyy hänen mukaansa intressien eikä arvojen tai maantieteen pohjalta (kuten aikaisemmin oli laita). Intressejä voidaan nyttemmin hoidella myös etänä, tappaa ei-toivottuja partapozoja matkan päästä lennokkien avulla. Kyllä maailma ennen pitkää älyää, että kaiken keskiössä pitää olla Suomen turvallisuus. Vittu mikä hölmöpää.
ellauri328.html on line 198: Uta Johanna Ingrid Ranke-Heinemann, geb. Heinemann (* 2. Oktober 1927 in Essen; † 25. März 2021 ebenda), war ab 26. Januar 1970 die weltweit erste Frau auf einem Lehrstuhl für Katholische Theologie. Nach dem Entzug der kirchlichen Lehrerlaubnis 1987 wechselte sie bis zur Emeritierung 1990 auf einen kirchenunabhängigen Lehrstuhl für Religionsgeschichte und wurde zur Bestsellerautorin.
ellauri328.html on line 377: Raamattumuseon hallituksen puheenjohtaja Steve Greenback, joka on myös Hobby Lobby -myymälöiden puheenjohtaja, ilmoitti, että museo palauttaa yli yksitoista tuhatta esinettä Egyptiin ja Irakiin. Kokoelma sisältää tuhansia papyrusjätteitä ja muinaisia savikappaleita. Greenback myönsi: "Tiesin vähän keräilymaailmasta... Virheistäni johtuva museota kohtaan esitetty kritiikki oli oikeutettua." Manchesterin yliopiston papyrologi Roberta Mazza totesi, että Greenbackin perhe "kaatoi miljoonia laillisille ja laittomille antiikkimarkkinoille ilman aavistustakaan esineiden historiasta, aineellisista piirteistä, kulttuurisesta arvosta, hauraudesta ja ongelmista".
ellauri328.html on line 379: Tämä palautus sisältää "Gilgamesh Dream Tablet -tabletin", joka sisältää osan Gilgamesh-eeposta, joka löydettiin Irakista vuonna 1853. Jordanian Antiquities Association myi sen antiikkikauppiaalle vuonna 2003 ja myi huutokauppakamari Hobby Lobbylle vuonna 2003. 2014 1,6 miljoonalla dollarilla. Huutokauppatalo valehteli esineen saapumisesta markkinoille ja väitti, että se oli ollut markkinoilla Yhdysvalloissa vuosikymmeniä. Syyskuussa 2019 liittovaltion viranomaiset takavarikoivat tabletin, ja toukokuussa 2020 jätettiin siviilivalitus sen menettämisestä. Heinäkuussa 2021 Yhdysvaltain oikeusministeriö ilmoitti takavarikoineensa Hobby Lobbyn Gilgamesh-tabletin palauttamista varten Irakiin.
ellauri328.html on line 383: Hobby Lobby Stores, Inc., entinen Hobby Lobby Creative Centers, on yhdysvaltalainen vähittäiskauppayritys. Se omistaa taide- ja käsityömyymäläketjun, jonka volyymi oli yli 5 miljardia dollaria vuonna 2018. Ketjulla on 1 001 myymälää 48 Yhdysvaltain osavaltiossa. Greenback-perhe perusti Hobby Lobbyn ilmaisemaan kristillisiä uskomuksiaan, ja ketjussa yhdistyvät amerikkalaiset konservatiiviset arvot ja kristillinen media. Yritys ja sen omistajat ovat olleet kiistojen ja skandaalien kohteena, mukaan lukien syytökset antisemitismistä, homofobiasta, LGBTQ-syrjinnästä, yrityksistä evankeloida julkisia kouluja, "pyrkimykset evätä työntekijöiden pääsy ehkäisyvälineisiin", "syrjintä ja laittomasti salakuljetetut esineet työntekijöiden vaarantamiseksi koronaviruspandemia."
ellauri328.html on line 385: Vuodesta 2009 lähtien Hobby Lobbyn edustajia "varoitettiin", että heidän ostamansa esineet ryöstettiin todennäköisesti Irakista. Ostot oli tehty Raamattumuseolle, jota yritys sponsoroi. Vuonna 2018 Yhdysvaltain New Yorkin itäisen piirin käräjäoikeus määräsi Hobby Lobbyn palauttamaan esineet ja maksamaan 3 000 000 dollarin sakon. Hobby Lobby palautti yli 5500 tuotetta toukokuussa 2018. Niiden joukossa oli lähes 4000 tablettia, joiden piti olla kadonneesta Irisagrigin kaupungista, jotka oli toimitettu Hobby Aulaan "laattanäytteiksi" merkittynä.
ellauri328.html on line 387: Syyskuussa 2013 eräs ostaja kertoi saaneensa myymälän työntekijän Marlborossa, New Jerseyssä, että Hobby Lobby ei kuljettanut juutalaisten juhlapyhiä juhlistavia tuotteita, koska kauppa ei "palvonut teitä ihmisiä". David Greenback esitti virallisen anteeksipyynnön Anti-Defamation Leaguelle, joka hyväksyi sen julkaistussa lausunnossa. Lisäksi Steve Greenback, David Greenbackin poika, antoi lausunnon, että kaupoissa oli ollut juutalaisia tuotteita aiemmin ja testataan markkinoita tehdäkseen niin tulevaisuudessa. Vuonna 2017 Snopes tarkasteli tätä asiaa uudelleen ja ilmoitti, että väite, jonka mukaan Hobby Lobby ei edelleenkään myynyt juutalaisia lomatuotteita, oli "vanhentunut".
ellauri328.html on line 391: Lisäiskuna Raamatun uskottavuudelle hallituksen puheenjohtaja Steve Greenback, joka on myös Hobby Lobby -myymälöiden johtaja, ilmoitti museon palauttavan yli yksitoista tuhatta esinettä Egyptiin ja Irakiin. Kokoelma sisälsi tuhansia papyrusjätteitä ja muinaisia savikappaleita.
ellauri328.html on line 395: Transnainen Meggan Sommerville voitti Illinoisin osavaltion valitustuomioistuimessa yksimielisen päätöksen, jonka mukaan hänellä on oikeus käyttää naisten huonetta töissä 13.8.2021. Hän oli ollut Hobby Hallin työntekijänä 22 vuotta, siirtyi heinäkuussa 2010, kirjoitettiin. töissä naisten huoneen käytön vuoksi vuoden 2011 alussa ja aloitti oikeussuojakeinojen hakemisen helmikuussa 2013. Päätös antaa hänelle myös mahdollisuuden vaatia Illinoisin ihmisoikeuskomission määräämiä 220 000 dollarin vahingonkorvauksia.
ellauri328.html on line 399: Esineet oli todennäköisesti ryöstetty Irakista Bad Bushin öljyristeilyn aikana. Hobby Lobbyn todettiin käyttäneen kuriireita, jotka olivat tahallisesti käyttäneet keinoja salata väitettyjen varastettujen tavaroiden alkuperä. Museo julkaisi lausunnon, jonka mukaan nämä esineet eivät koskaan olleet Raamatun museon omistuksessa, eikä niitä koskaan tarkoitettu osaksi heidän kokoelmaansa. Itse asiassa he olivat olleet suihkussa koko ajan. Vuonna 2018 tavarat palautettiin Irakiin, ja yhtiö maksoi 3 miljoonan dollarin sakon.
ellauri328.html on line 401: Scott Thumma, Hartfordin seminaarin uskontososiologian dekaani ja professori, puolusti Hobby Lobbya salakuljetuskiistan aikana. Thumba totesi: "Monet suurten kansallisten museoidemme ja yliopistojemme kokoelmista ovat täynnä juuri niitä esineitä, joista Hobby Lobby saa sakkoja salakuljetuksesta, ja niitä vaaditaan harvoin palauttamaan tai maksamaan korvauksia. Kuten Raamattu osoittaa ja kertoo, kaksi väärää tuottaa usein yhden oikean."
ellauri328.html on line 403: Lokakuussa 2019 Papyriprojektia hallinnoivan voittoa tavoittelemattoman British Egypt Exploration Society -järjestön virkamiehet väittivät, että Oxfordin akateemikko Dirk Obbink varasti ja myi "ainakin 11 muinaista raamatunpalaa Greenbackin perheelle, Hobby Lobbyn omistajille. jotka pitävät raamattumuseota ja hyväntekeväisyysjärjestöä Washingtonissa." Museo ilmoitti palauttavansa palaset Egypt Exploration Societylle ja Oxfordin yliopistolle.
ellauri328.html on line 421: Kenneth W. Howard (s. 19. syyskuuta 1952) on amerikkalainen uskonjohtaja, kirjailija, uskontotieteilijä, konsultti ja voittoa tavoittelematon johtaja – tällä hetkellä The FaithX Projectin pääjohtaja. Muotokuva Ken Howardista, jolla on yllään alushame, jonka hän varasti Hobby Hallista ja jossa on sekä kristillisiä että juutalaisia symboleja (pöllitty 2012).
ellauri328.html on line 422: Portrait of Ken Howard, wearing a petticoat he stole from Hobby Hall, featuring both Christian and Jewish symbols (taken 2012).
ellauri328.html on line 434: Mutta suunnitelmassa A oli vieläkin nerokkaampi strategia, joka sisältää kiehtovan osan näyttelystä. Kuka tiesi, että 1980-luvun lopulla luovat, määrätietoiset Raamatun salakuljettajat työskentelivät kolme vuotta tuodakseen Raamattuja Neuvostoliittoon robotti-u-veneiden avulla!
ellauri328.html on line 436: Näyttely kertoo kuin jotain James Bondista: Heidän monimutkaisin suunnitelmansa oli käyttää robottivenettä rajan yli, upottaa se vesitiiviiseen astiaan käärittynä Raamatut ja aktivoida jäljitysmajakan Neuvostoliitossa oleville toimihenkilöilleen. . Howard rakensi ohjausjärjestelmän veneelle ja hänen lankonsa loi upotuslaitteen (näyttelyssä). Lempinimellä "instant hole" -laite upottaa veneen, jotta se voisi matkustaa salaa Suomesta Venäjälle.
ellauri328.html on line 439: Yksityiskohdat tästä hämmästyttävästä yrityksestä, jota yritettiin 19. toukokuuta 1980, sisältyvät näyttelyvideoon, mukaan lukien live-materiaalia robottiveneestä. Valitettavasti juuri ennen kuin he saavuttivat laukaisupisteen, johon he hinasivat robottivenettä, heidän paluuveneensä lähetys epäonnistui ja heidän oli keskeytettävä tehtävä. Uskomatonta, he eivät antaneet periksi.
ellauri328.html on line 441: Näyttelyn esittelyssä kerrotaan, kuinka silkkipainatus raamattujen luomiseksi saatiin aikaan yhteisellä paikallisella ja ulkomailla. Venäjällä ihmiset rakensivat kehyksiä ja loivat musteen. Ulkomailta tulleet salakuljettivat kankaita näyttöihin verhomateriaalin avulla tai naisia, jotka ovat kiinnostuneita alushameista (Faith McDonnellin luvalla). Faith JH McDonnell on Rt:n perustaman voittoa tavoittelemattoman Katartismos Globalin (KGI) edunvalvontajohtaja. Pastori Julian Dobbs ja hänen vaimonsa pyhien varustamisesta alushameilla. Faith on kirjoittanut Girl Soldier: A Story of Hope for Northern Ugandan Children (Chosen Books, 2007).
ellauri328.html on line 442: Faith JH McDonnell on Rt:n perustaman voittoa tavoittelemattoman Katartismos Globalin (KGI) edunvalvontajohtaja. Pastori Julian Dobbs ja hänen vaimonsa pyhien varustamisesta alushameilla. Faith on kirjoittanut Girl Soldier: A Story of Hope for Northern Ugandan Children (Chosen Books, 2007).
ellauri328.html on line 448: Paljas totuus: Gender-ideologia ei ota huomioon seksin darwinistista alkuperää - nisäkkäiden lisääntymisstrategiaa, mukaan lukien ihmiset, jotka kyyryvät kuin raidaperäiset paviaanit. Liito-oravauroskin haistelee naarasta kolon äärellä. Seksi, genderhanhille, ei ole objektiivinen totuus miesten ja naisten liittämisestä yhteen keskikohdalta. Emme ole miehiä tai naisia kehomme rakenteemme tai sen vuoksi, että kehomme on suunnattu kohti banaania tai viikunaa, siittiöiden tai munasolujen tuotannon ympärillä. Ihmiset ovat muka pohjimmiltaan psykologisia itsejä, joilla on sisäinen sukupuolitunnus - kuin ruumiittomia sukupuolisieluja. (Väärin! Raamattu sanoo, että taivaassa perseet tervataan.) Nämä "sukupuoli-identiteetit" ovat riippumattomia ja voivat olla ristiriidassa niiden kiimaisten elinten kanssa, jotka Jumala antoi meille ja jotka Raamattu alkoi yhdistää oviin "Ladies" ja "Gentlemen." Nämä "sexi"-kategoriat ovat pelkkää huijausta, sanoo gender-ideologi (en minä, Cod forbid, olen sexipoikia).
ellauri328.html on line 468: Avustuskeskustelu paljastaa myös republikaanipuolueen sisällä vallinneen valtavan ulkopolitiikan välisen erimielisyyden Make America Great Again -isolaationistien ja vanhan koulukunnan välillä, joka edelleen kannattaa vankkaa globaalia johtajuutta liittoutumien kautta, jotka auttoivat varmistamaan USAn maailmanlaajuisen hegemonian toisen maailmansodan jälkeen.
ellauri328.html on line 470: "Niin typerää kuin onkin kieltää selkeä yhteys Amerikan vihollisten ja kohtaamiemme uhkien välillä, on aivan yhtä vaarallista teeskennellä, että globaalina suurvaltana kansakuntamme ei voisi tai ei saisi kohdata niitä kaikkia."
ellauri328.html on line 476: Biden selitti kannattavansa humanitaarista taukoa Israelin operaatioissa antaakseen aikaa panttivankien vapauttamiseen Gazassa ja sanoi ymmärtävänsä "tunteen". Mutta hän on kieltäytynyt julkisesti kehottamasta Israelia sopimaan tulitauosta Hamasin kanssa, koska sillä on oikeus puolustautua 7. lokakuuta tapahtuneiden terrori-iskujen jälkeen, jotka tappoivat Israelissa 1 400 ihmistä, joista suurin osa on siviilejä. Moosexenuskoiset ovat saaneet tapetuxi vasta vaivoin 3 kertaa enemmän. Ei se vielä riitä. Presidentti torjuu islamofobiaa vaikka maata vaivaa kasvava antisemitismi.
ellauri328.html on line 513: Tlaib, one of the House's most vocal critics of Israel's treatment of Palestinians, has come under intense scrutiny following Hamas' deadly attack on October 7. Her failure to directly condemn Hamas' attack while still mourning the loss of life on both Israeli and Palestinian sides, as well as her blaming Israel for the deadly strike on a Gaza hospital, angered many in Congress, including Greene. Condemning is important, you show who was right and who was wrong, viz. which side you're on. Two wrongs don't make right, only one of them does.
ellauri330.html on line 38: Kyllä. Aivosähkötoiminta loppuu samoin kuin selkäytimen toiminta. Tämän seurauksena seurauksena sydän ja hengitys pysähtyy ja käytännössä ihminen muuttuu lihasäkiksi, jossa on yhä sisäelimet tallella. Aineenvaihdunnan pysähtymisen jälkeen alkaa elimistön hajoaminen kemiallisten reaktioiden seurauksena ja mikrobitoiminnan jatkuessa.
ellauri330.html on line 88: "Käymme läpitte neljä kyömynenäistä teoreettista lähestymistapaa tietoisuuteen: korkeamman asteen teoriat, globaalit työtilateoriat, palaamisen ja ennakoivan käsittelyn teoriat ja integroitu tietoteoria." Kaikki kuulostavat aivan höyrypäisiltä.
"On hyviä syitä ajatella, että tietoisuusteorioiden iteratiivinen kehittäminen, testaus ja vertailu johtavat tämän syvimmän mysteerin syvempään ymmärtämiseen." Vittu mikä mysteeri? Pelkkää termiittiapinoiden narsismia se on eikä muuta.
ellauri330.html on line 92: Robert Sutton on Stanfordin yliopiston professori, motivaatiomallien, organisaatiorakenteiden ja luovuuden asiantuntija. Yli sadan artikkelin ja kahdeksan kirjan kirjoittaja, mukaan lukien The No Asshole Rule; Outoja ideoita, jotka toimivat; Knowing-Doing Gap ym. Dan Ariely on psykologian ja käyttäytymistalouden professori Duken yliopistossa ja yksi Center for Advanced Hindsightin perustajista. Pylkkäsen erikoisaloja ovat mielenfilosofia, mieli–ruumis-ongelma, kognitiotieteen perusteet, fysiikan filosofia, David Bohmin luonnonfilosofia ja kvanttiteorian perusteet. Hän väitteli vuonna 1992 Bohmin kvanttiteoriatulkinnan merkityksestä mielenfilosofialle ja kognitiotieteelle. Bohm oli täysi huijari ja Paavo siihen hurahtanut huuhaamies. Tämmöstä bergsonilaisuutta: "Neo- Naturalist Approaches to Consciousness. Research topic in the journal Frontiers in Psychology, 2019." Näistäkin on jo paljon paasattu. Sekobolzisesta David Bohmista on alustava paasaus syntymäpäiväalbumissa 52.
ellauri330.html on line 96: Mikä vitun mind body problem ääliöt? Johan sen Simmias ja Aristoteles poistivat päiväjärjestyxestä. Ilman Platoa ja Descartesta se olisi jo aikaa sitten unohdettu. Mutta vielä piisaa näitä törttöjä jotka törmäilevät kartesiolaisissa omanapakoordinaateissa koittaen pelastaa taivastoivon dualismilla.
ellauri330.html on line 213: Ze'ev Jabotinsky, Member of the Most Excellent British Order (heprea : זְאֵב זַ׳בּוֹטִינְסְקִי, romanisoitu : Ze'ev Zhabotinski; syntynyt Vladimir Jevgenjevitš [17 October 1880 – 3 August 1940] oli revarisiionisten johtaja, kirjailija, runoilija, puhuja, sotilas ja juutalaisten itsepuolustustekniikan kehittäjä Odesassa (huom: vain 1 s).
ellauri330.html on line 233: Viime vuosina neurobiologiset tietoisuusteoriat ovat kuitenkin kukoistaneet. Tämä on merkki alan kasvavasta kypsyydestä, koska vain teorian muotoisesti muotoiltuina kokeelliset havainnot voivat tarjota tyydyttävän ymmärryksen tietoisuudesta.
ellauri330.html on line 237: Globaalit työtilateoriat (2) ehdottavat, että mielentilat ovat tietoisia, kun ne leviävät laajasti aivoissa, jotta niitä voidaan käyttää joustavasti ohjaamaan käyttäytymistä. Hyvä tapa ajatella globaalia työtilateoriaa on se, että tietoisuus riippuu "aivomaineesta" – tietoiset mielentilat on kuin aivojen julkkixia tai CIA-agentteja, joilla on pääsy monenlaisiin kognitiivisiin prosesseihin tavoilla, joilla tiedostamattomat tavis mielentilat eivät.
ellauri330.html on line 267: Tekoälyjärjestelmä tai robotti, joka kokee subjektiivisesti oman itsensä, sen sijaan että se olisi hienostunut kone, joka antaa vaikutelman, että hänellä on minä, mutta jossa ei todellisuudessa tapahdu mitään, eivät eroa millään tavalla. Dennett on hieman epäselvä sen suhteen, mitä hänen mielestään havainnollinen tai ilmiömäinen kokemus on, onko sitä olemassa vai ei – onko järjestelmän kaikki toiminnot ja sen taipumukset käyttäytyä tietyllä tavalla selitettyä, jääkö mitään selitettävää. Ei jää. Narsismia se on vaan.
ellauri330.html on line 339: Georg Morris Cohen Brandes (4. helmikuuta 1842 Kööpenhamina – 19. helmikuuta 1927 Kööpenhamina) oli tanskalainen kirjallisuusarvostelija, tutkija ja kirjailija, joka oli 1870–1880-luvulla pohjoismaisen kirjallisen elämän merkittävin auktoriteetti. Juutalaistaustainen Brandes opiskeli estetiikkaa Kööpenhaminan yliopistossa ja väitteli tohtoriksi vuonna 1870 tutkielmalla Den franske æsthetik i vore dage: En afhandling om H. Taine. Vuodesta 1871 alkaen hän luennoi yliopistossa 19. vuosisadan kirjallisuuden päävirtauksista. Vaikutusvaltaiset luennot julkaistiin kuutena niteenä (1872–90), ja Brandes esitti niissä kirjallis-filosofien ohjelmansa: kirjallisuuden on tarkasteltava yhteiskunnallisia ongelmia ja edistettävä vapauspaatosta ja vallankumoushenkeä. Luennot saivat jopa raivostuneen vastaanoton, eikä Brandes saanut yliopistosta professuuria. Hänestä tuli kuitenkin älymystön keskushahmo; hänen ympärilleen ryhmittyivät muiden muassa J. P. Jacobsen, Henrik Ibsen, Bjørnstjerne Bjørnson ja August Strindberg. Suomeen hänen vaikutuksensa saapui Minna Canthin välityksellä.
ellauri330.html on line 356: Mutta Sombart, hänhän on sekä henkinen että ruumiillinen snobbi! mylvi pitkä ja blondi Ernst Nevanlinna Aarne-sedän oloiselle Akulle Lönnrotinkadulla. Nyze vihainen herra huutaa taas, apulainen säikähti. Sombart oli aivan loistava kirjailija Rafun mielestä. Aku ei sunkaan ollut punikki ja Rafu vielä vähemmän.
ellauri330.html on line 561: Manifesti toimi kuitenkin myös lähtölaukauksena Suomen kenraalikuvernööriksi vuonna 1898 nimitetyn Nikolai Bobrikovin murhalle, joka tähtäsi Suomen autonomian eli itsehallinnon kaventamiseen ja Suomen venäläistämiseen monin muinkin tavoin. Schaumannin kuti hallituxen rapussa oli Bobrikovin lähtölaukaus.
ellauri331.html on line 64: Ukrainan vastahyökkäyksen pääsuunnaksi kehittyi lopulta niin sanottu Melitopolin tai Tokmakin suunta. Ukraina onnistui kesän ja syksyn aikana puskemaan noin kymmenen kilometriä kohti Tokmakia ja vapauttamaan Robotynen kylän. Ukrainan vastahyökkäyksen tilinpäätös ei ole kaunista katsottavaa, sillä Kastehelmen mukaan yhteenkään strategiseen tavoitteeseen ei päästy. Etenkin etelässä haviteltiin läpimurtoa, joka jäi saavuttamatta. Pienetkin voitot saavutettiin raskailla ja vaikeilla taisteluilla.
ellauri331.html on line 83: Slobojen vaihtoehtoiset uutissivut smi2.ru eivät aukea, lännen kyberröllit varmaan tukkivat. Lännen Uikipedia muikenee kuin vaari koko sivustosta. Venäläinen Viki myöntää yhden kritiikin: SMI2:ta syytetään usein tabloid -tyylisten napsautussyöttiotsikoiden käytöstä. Aggregaattorin johto väittää kamppailevansa tämän ilmiön kanssa, mutta tunnustaa clickbaitin tehokkuuden lukijoiden houkuttelemisessa.
ellauri331.html on line 90: Robert Sutton on Stanfordin yliopiston professori, motivaatiomallien, organisaatiorakenteiden ja luovuuden asiantuntija. Yli sadan artikkelin ja kahdeksan kirjan kirjoittaja, mukaan lukien The No Asshole Rule; Outoja ideoita, jotka toimivat; Knowing-Doing Gap ym. Dan Ariely on psykologian ja käyttäytymistalouden professori Duken yliopistossa ja yksi Center for Advanced Hindsightin perustajista.
ellauri331.html on line 146: Julkaisun hengessä heidän kotisivullaan on latinaksi sanottu "Novае rеs а nobis confictae" (Uusia keksimiämme asioita), mutta useimmat lukijat eivät luultavasti ymmärtäisi sitä.
ellauri331.html on line 173: Hearst Shkulev Median digitaalisen median haara koostuu naisten Internet-portaalien verkostosta (Sites Elle.ru, WomansDay.ru, Starhit.ru, MarieClaire.ru, ElleGirl.ru, Parents.ru, Psychologies.ru), projektista MaximOnline. ru, mobiilisovellukset ja digitaaliset versiot. Naisille jotka eivät ymmärrä politiikasta enempää kuin lehmä uudesta sähköaidasta.
ellauri331.html on line 181: 25. syyskuuta 2008 lähtien verkkotunnus ingushetiya.ru lakkasi toimimasta ja verkkoportaalin osoite muutettiin ingushetia.org:ksi, koska sivusto oli liikaa pehmennyt. Eli tarve luoda portaali johtui siitä, että viime aikoina "tasavallan uuden johdon ponnistelujen ansiosta Ingushetia.org-portaali on pehmentänyt oppositiosuuntautuneisuuttaan, mikä luonnollisesti sulkee pois tämän resurssin riippumattomuus ja objektiivisuus sisällissodassa, joka on jatkunut Ingušiassa seitsemän viime vuoden ajan." 25. lokakuuta 2009 sivuston omistaja Maksharip Aushev ammuttiin kuoliaaksi Naltšikissa. Tää on jotain vaippapäiden paikallista nujakointia.
ellauri331.html on line 191: Eli The Insider on "riippumaton" online-sanomalehti, joka on erikoistunut hutkivaan journalismiin, vaihtoehtoisten faktojen tarkistamiseen ja poliittiseen google-analytiikkaan. Sen perusti vuonna 2013 venäläinen toimittaja ja sanomalehden omistaja Roman Dobrokhotov. Sanomalehti on tunnettu valeuutisten paljastamisesta Venäjän mediassa.Verkkosivuston toimitus sijaitsee Riiassa, Latviassa. Andris Jansons ( Андрис Янсонс ) on verkkosivuston päätoimittaja.
ellauri331.html on line 208: Vuonna 2004 Interfax loi "SPARK-järjestelmän", joka on suunniteltu tarkistamaan liikeagentteja Venäjällä, Ukrainassa ja Kazakstanissa. Interfax lanseerasi myös mediaseurantapalvelut "SCAN-järjestelmänsä" kautta. Vuonna 2011 yhtiö lisäsi Lontoossa toimivan Interfax Global Energy -projektin, joka raportoi energiamarkkinoista maailmanlaajuisesti. Interfax hallitsee noin 50 %
ellauri331.html on line 231: Meduza (venäjäksi: Медуза, nimetty kreikkalaisen jumalattaren Medusan mukaan ) on venäjän- ja englanninkielinen "riippumaton" uutissivusto, jonka pääkonttori sijaitsee Riiassa, Latviassa. Sen perusti vuonna 2014 joukko silloisen itsenäisen Lenita.ru- uutissivuston entisiä työntekijöitä. Ilmaisista mobiilisovelluksista iOS: lle, Windows Phonelle ja Androidille tuli median perusta. Portaalin puolivirallinen motto on "Tee Kremlistä surullinen". Ei siis kuulu enää tänne, koska tämä on balttijulkaisu.
ellauri331.html on line 259: Vuonna 2017 Asan Institute for Policy Studies sanoi, että Occupy Democrats "jakavat sekä oikeita että valeuutisia... hämärtäen entisestään tosiasian ja fiktion välistä rajaa". Jotkut pseudotieteelliset tutkimukset ovat tunnistaneet Occupy Democrats -sivuston valeuutisten verkkosivustoksi. The Atlanticin mukaan Occupy Democratsin viestit ovat "tulvattuja yksinkertaisesti valeuutisilla". Los Angeles Weekly kertoi että sen viestit ovat "vapaita objektiivisuuden ja joissakin tapauksissa tosiasioiden rajoituksista". Siis OD:n, ei LAW:n.
ellauri331.html on line 352: Seitsemän Novaja Gazetan toimittajaa, mukaan lukien Juri Shchekotshikhin, Anna Politkovskaya ja Anastasia Baburova, on murhattu epähuomiossa vuodesta 2000 lähtien heidän hutkintansa yhteydessä. Kaikkein surullisinta on ett sanomalehden perusti ryhmä entisiä Komsomolskaja Pravdan toimittajia vuonna 1993, sen etunimi oli Ezhednevnaja Novaja Gazeta (Daily New Gazette). Ukraina-ozainen Mihail Gorbatšov käytti vuoden 1990 Nobelin rauhanpalkintonsa rahoja Novaja Gazetan perustamiseen vuonna 1993 ja sen ensimmäisten tietokoneiden hankintaan. Hukkaan menivät nekin rahat, noin ryssän kannalta.
ellauri331.html on line 353: Lokakuussa 2021 Novaja Gazetan päätoimittaja Dmitri Muratov sai Nobelin rauhanpalkinnon yhdessä Maria Ressan kanssa sananvapauden turvaamisesta kotimaassaan. Panikohan sekin palkkiorahat likoon komsomolin puolesta?
ellauri331.html on line 369: Novaya Gazeta.Europe -lehden ensimmäinen painettu numero ilmestyi 6. toukokuuta 2022 Latvian lehtikioskissa Riiassa ja verkossa osoitteessa novayagazeta.eu. Painetun version julkaisee Rīgas Viļņi Riiassa, Latviassa. Eli ei tämäkään kuulu enää tänne. Venäjän valtakunnansyyttäjä nimesi 28.6.2023 Novaya-Gazeta Europen ei-toivotuksi organisaatioksi, eikä ihmekään. Eikä ihme sekään että tää läpyskä on saanut sen 77 palkkntoa länkkäreiltä, rauhannoobelia myöden. Kommunitsheskij molodezh pyörii haudassaan.
ellauri331.html on line 381: Syyskuun 1. päivänä 2020 Facebook ja Twitter ilmoittivat saaneensa liittovaltion tutkintaviraston varoituksen disinformaatioyrityksestä ja ilmoittivat poistaneensa tai jäädyttäneensä siihen liittyviä tilejä. Daily Beast -sivusto kertoi, että operaatio yritti sijoittaa sisältöä Jacobiniin, In These Timesiin ja Truthoutiin, mutta epäonnistui.
ellauri331.html on line 447: Proekt ilmoitti 28.6.2021 julkaisevansa selvityksen Venäjän sisäministeri Vladimir Kolokoltsevin omaisten omaisuudesta. Seuraavana päivänä Moskovan poliisi teki ratsian Roman Badassin, apulaispäätoimittajan Mihail Rubinin ja Proekt Maria Zholobovan perustajan asuntoihin; poliisi takavarikoi myös journalistisia laitteita kuten faxikoneen. Virallisesti etsinnät liittyivät vuoden 2017 journalistiseen tutkimukseen Putinin ystävästä, liikemiehestä ja rikospomo Ilja Traberista [ ru ]. Natalia Zviagina, Amnesty Internationalin Venäjän toimiston johtaja, sanoi, että ratsia on "osa järjestelmällistä puhdistusta kaikista kriittisistä äänistä, jotka paljastavat maan vallanpitäjien väärinkäytökset".
ellauri331.html on line 586: "Kun suunnittelimme tätä projektia vuonna 2005, aioimme esitellä toisen vahvan toimijan kansainväliselle näyttämölle, pelaajan, joka ei vain tarjoa puolueetonta kattavuutta Venäjän tapahtumista, vaan myös yrittäisi, haluan korostaa, yrittää murtaa. anglosaksinen monopoli globaaleihin tietovirtoihin... Eihän se toki onnistu, mutta yrittänyttä ei laiteta.
ellauri331.html on line 604: Lokakuussa 2022 RT:n juontaja Anton Krasovsky sanoi lähetyksessä, että Ukrainan lapset, jotka olivat aiemmin kritisoineet Neuvostoliittoa Ukrainan miehittäjinä, olisi pitänyt hukuttaa tai polttaa. Lisäksi hän nauroi kertoessaan, että venäläissotilaat raiskasivat iäkkäitä ukrainalaisia naisia vuoden 2022 hyökkäyksen aikana. Simonyan pidätti hänet myöhemmin, ja rikostutkinta aloitettiin. Professori Robert Orttungin George Washingtonin yliopistosta tekemässä tutkimuksessa todettiin, että RT käyttää inhimillisiä tarinoita ilman ideologista sisältöä houkutellakseen katsojia kanavilleen. Emäkieroa!
ellauri331.html on line 606: Turvallisuusopinnot -lehdessä vuonna 2021 julkaistun tutkimuksen mukaan RT:llä on jonkin verran vaikutusta katsojien poliittisiin mielipiteisiin. RT:lle "altistuneet" katsojat "kannattivat 10–20 prosentilla todennäköisemmin Yhdysvaltojen vetäytymistä "osuustoiminnallisen globaalin johtajan roolista" kuin ne, jotka eivät katsoneet RT:tä. Linja jatkui, vaikka paljastimme, että Venäjän hallitus rahoittaa RT:tä." Altistumisella RT:lle ei kuitenkaan ollut mitattavissa olevaa "vaikutusta amerikkalaisten näkemyksiin sisäpolitiikasta tai Venäjän hallituksesta." Vizi tuskinpa turvallisuusopiskelijat ehtivät tehdä pitkittäistutkimuxia ja osoittaa että jenkit RT:tä kazottuaan heräsivät aamuna muutamana ison takkuparran kanssa ja peiliin kazottuaan sanoivat: Ах нет нет!
ellauri331.html on line 643: Läppä läppä, eivät ole. Rykovtseva ahkeroi Radio Svobodassa, sillä ei ole wikisivua. Otto Lätsis oli latvialaissyntyinen toimittaja, joka kyllä on jo vainaja. Hruštšovin sulan lopussa hän työskenteli Izvestiassa, jossa hän kannatti sensuurin löystämistä ja pyrki tekemään sanomalehden suosituksi älymystön keskuudessa. Kommunisti-lehdessä hän lipsui perestroikan kannalle. Hänen loppunsa oli kamala. 10. syyskuuta 2005, kun Otto Lätsis ajoi Peugeotilla ja kääntyi vasemmalle risteyksessä, jeeppi törmäsi hänen autoonsa suurella nopeudella. Otto Lätsis ja hänen pojanpoikansa sekä jeeppiä ajanut nainen ja hänen kaksi lastaan joutuivat sairaalahoitoon. Lätsis viipyi koomassa yli puolitoista kuukautta, mutta kuoli lopulta vammoihinsa. Hän kuoli klo 5.00 MSK:ssa 3. marraskuuta 2005 Burdenkon sairaalassa Moskovassa.
ellauri331.html on line 674: Sputnik ( venäläinen ääntäminen: [ˈsputnʲɪk] ; aiemmin Voice of Russia ja RIA Novosti, nimi johdettu venäjän sanasta спутник, "satelliitti") on Venäjän valtion omistama uutistoimisto ja radiolähetyspalvelu. Sen perusti Venäjän hallituksen omistama uutistoimisto Rossija Segodnya 10. marraskuuta 2014. Sputnikilla on pääkonttori Moskovassa (check), ja se ylläpitää alueellisia toimituksia Washingtonissa, DC:ssä, Kairossa, Pekingissä, Pariisissa, Berliinissä, Madridissa, Montevideossa ja Rio de Janeirossa. Sputnik kuvailee itseään globaaliin politiikkaan ja talouteen keskittyväksi ja kosiskelee kansainvälistä antianglosaxisista yleisöä. Taisin jo mainita, että Sputnikin oli tarkoitus tavoittaa maailmanlaajuinen yleisö, joka on "väsynyt yksinapaista maailmaa edistävästä aggressiivisesta propagandasta ja joka haluaa toisenlaisen näkökulman". Asema väittää, että se "näyttää kaiken". Vieraillessaan RT-televisioverkon Moskovan tukikohdassa vuonna 2013 presidentti Vladimir Putin sanoi, että sekä silloin tulevan Sputnik-toimiston että RT:n takana oli ajatus "murtaa anglosaksisten globaalien tietovirtojen monopoli". Ei sitä niin vain murreta, parahin Volodymyr! Huhtikuussa 2017 Sputnik allekirjoitti henkilöstövaihtosopimuksen Kiinan kommunistisen puolueen tabloidin Global Timesin kanssa. Haha, luuletko että siitä on mitään apua? Nehän kirjoittavat niillä kärpäsenkakkakirjaimillakin.
ellauri332.html on line 78: Elokuva ei ole teatterin jatke. Se on kolmiulotteinen taidemuoto, jossa aika, objektiivit ja kameran liike luovat tilallisen avaruuden ja jota ohjataan kokonaisvaltaisena prosessina, käyttäen keinoina muun muassa kaluston teknisiä ominaisuuksia sekä mahdollisuutta liikuttaa näyttelijöitä ja kuvaavaa instrumenttia – periaatteessa katsojaa. Elokuvan perusominaisuus on, että kameran voi viedä minne vain ja se voi kuvata mitä vain, mutta sillä ei ole järkeä, tahtoa tai tunteita. Elokuvaohjaajan on ohjattava elokuvaajaa, joka käyttää kameraa tallettamaan esityksen, joka ohjataan kameran eteen. Ja kuvata otos yhä uudelleen, kunnes se onnistuu, jolloin on sen kuvan ensi-ilta. Hyväksytyistä otoista kootaan elokuva. Elokuvaohjaajan pitää olla katsojan edustaja.
ellauri332.html on line 231: Historiassa oli yksi kohta, jolloin Bella ja Edward olivat kaikkien suosikkipari, vaikka he olivatkin kuvitteellisia hahmoja. "Twilight"-fanit villisti, kun näyttelijät Kristen Stewart ja Robert Pattinson sytyttivät maailman tuleen heidän ruudun ulkopuolisella suhteellaan. Ai siis ketkä? N.h. koko konkkaronkka.
ellauri332.html on line 240:
Hobitti-trilobiitti [löysä paska]
ellauri332.html on line 242: Joten ensinnäkin muistetaan, että olisi lähes mahdotonta seurata "Taru sormusten herrasta" trilogialla, joka olisi jopa lähellä Oscar-palkittua sarjaa. Mutta jotkut faneista olivat ainakin toiveikkaita, että ainakin heidät voitaisiin kuljettaa jälleen Keski-Maan maailmaan. Ehkä hobittijoukon joukossa oli mieltymyksen puutetta tai se, että he vetivät sen, mitä olisi pitänyt olla enintään kaksi elokuvaa kolmeen. Liian pitkät ja hieman hitaat tarinat, nämä elokuvat saivat yliarvostetun merkin sekä katsojilta että kriitikoilta. Booooring, sanoi liikaa kissavideoita massuttaneet ylipainoiset jenkkikazomot.
ellauri332.html on line 246: Elokuva seuraa Teemu Keskisarjan nyrkkeilijän nousua (johon on lisätty rakkaus Bronxista), joka pääsee niin pitkälle ja huomaa sitten, että hänen tunnepitoisuuden puute on este kehässä ja hänen elämässään. Ohjaaja Martin Scorcesen ja Robert De Niron johdolla sitä pidetään klassikkona. Automerkistä tutun De Niron "menetelmänäyttelijä" -lähestymistapa väkivaltaisen Jake LaMottan hahmoon aiheutti kuitenkin paljon epämukavuutta näyttelijöille ja miehistölle. Tämä sisälsi suunnittelemattoman todellisen fyysisen nokkapokan, joka tapahtui yhdessä De Niron ja Cathy Moriartyn kohtauksista. Yleisö repesi. Kärpässarjan nyrkkeilijä näyttää urpolta ruipelolta, vetäiskö turpaan edes Sauli Niinistölle. No sille kyllä.
ellauri332.html on line 289: Tämän elokuvan tarina on yksinkertainen ja suoraviivainen – Sarah menettää perheensä, ja auttaakseen häntä selviytymään hänen tyttöystävänsä vievät hänet tutkimaan luolia yhdessä. Joo, emme myöskään ymmärrä, miten tämän pitäisi auttaa. Elokuva onnistuu saamaan meidät tuntemaan klaustrofobista oloa, vaikka katsommekin sitä mukavasti tilavasta kodistamme keittiösaarekkeesta käsin.
ellauri332.html on line 362: Tämä elokuva riittää antamaan jopa tyylitaitoisille ihmisille muotifobian. "In Fabric" vastaa kysymykseen (et todennäköisesti koskaan ajatellut kysyä): "Mitä tapahtuisi, jos mekkoni kummittelee?" Vastaus? No, se ei olisi kaunista.
ellauri332.html on line 438: In fact, there are min. eight other film and TV adaptations, including an Emmy award-sinning TV mini-series, and Roland Joffé's 1995 Hollywood feature starring Robert Duvall, Gary Oldman and Demi Moore.
ellauri332.html on line 445: Nathaniel Hawthornes (1850) Bestseller wurde immer wieder verfilmt, so 1934 von Robert G. Vignola und 1926 von Victor Sjöström. Trotzdem nahm sich auch Wim Wenders mit dem von ihm mit gegründeten Filmverlag der Autoren 1973 dem Sujet an. Während Hawthorne die Probleme von Einwanderern der zweiten Generation in den Mittelpunkt stellte, setzte der Regisseur seinen Focus auf den persönlichen Konflikt der Figuren. Senta Berger war 1973 ein international bekannter Filmstar. Sie legt als
ellauri332.html on line 448: "Der scharlachrote Buchstabe" ist ein untypisches Filmprojekt von Wenders, doch der Roman war in der Schule seine Lieblingslektüre. Erst bei der Umsetzung merkte er, dass ihm das Projekt nicht lag, auch erschwerten finanzielle und logistische Probleme seine Arbeit. Nachdem Dreharbeiten in Amerika zu teuer waren, drehte Wenders in einer kleinen spanischen Filmwesternstadt. Die Puritaner werden teilweise von katholischen Spaniern, der Indianer von einem invaliden Torero verkörpert. Im Nachhinein war Wenders wenig zufrieden mit seinem zweiten Werk - auch an den Kinokassen setzt sich das etwas statische Werk nicht durch.
ellauri332.html on line 501: "Memoirs of a Geisha" oli Arthur Goldenin [n.h.] myydyin romaani. Elokuvantekijä Rob Marshall, Oscar-palkitun Chicagon ohjaaja, otti sen uudelleen elokuvaksi. Kaliforniassa kuvattua japsuelokuvaa kritisoitiin epäaitoudesta. "Memoirs of a Geisha" voitti kolme Oscar-palkintoa, mutta se sai vaihtelevia arvosteluja ja sitä kritisoitiin laihojen kiinalaisten näyttelijöiden käyttämisestä pulskien japanilaisten naisten esittämiseen. Sekä kiinalaiset että japanilaiset loukkaantuivat. Mutta jopa kirja oli kiistanalainen, sillä kirjailijaa inspiroinut geisha haastoi hänet oikeuteen heidän nimettömyytensä sopimuksen rikkomisesta. Vittu että jenkit on sitten kieroja.
ellauri332.html on line 561: "Alexander" (2004) oli 3 tunnin elokuva, joka tehtiin yhteen ommeltujen puoliksi leivottujen ideoiden välähdyksistä siinä toivossa että katsojat olisivat innoissaan nähdessään valkaistun blondin Colin Farrellin [muutkin kuin Nora "Genital" Roberz], joka kuvasi Aleksanteri Suurta, ja Angelina Jolien, joka näytteli hänen äitirooliaan suurella näytöllä. Yleisö piti tätä historiallisten epätarkkuuksien ja Colinin hinuroinnin lisäksi yhtenä elokuvan naurettavimmista asioista. "Emme väitä vastustavamme homoja ", sanoi Yannis
ellauri332.html on line 579: Tarantino-leffan on lähes mahdotonta paeta kiistoja. No, hänen vuoden 2019 elokuvansa "Once Upon a Time in Hollywood" ei ole poikkeus. Elokuva on fantastinen ote todellisista Hollywoodin ikoneista ja traagisista Mansonin perheen murhista. Kriitikoista huolimatta tapa, jolla toimintatähti-ikoni Bruce Lee on kuvattu Tarantinon tarinassa, herätti kiistaa. Shannon Lee, Bruce Leen tytär, on ulkoisesti panostanut elokuvaan sen loukkaavasta kuvasta hänen isänsä. Lisäksi monet ovat puhuneet elokuvasta sen selkeän naisten objektiivisuuden ja heihin kohdistuvan väkivallan kuvauksen vuoksi.
ellauri332.html on line 587: Tämä Vietnamin sodan ympärille keskittynyt elokuva, jonka pääosissa ovat Hollywoodin raskassarjat kuten Robert DeNiro, Christopher Walken ja Meryl Streep, pidetään ikonisena. Se ei kuitenkaan ole vailla kiistaa. Elokuva kuvaa traumaattisia kidutuskohtauksia, joita on sittemmin kritisoitu törkeästä epätarkkuudesta. Se sai jopa Vietnamin veteraanit sotaa vastaan protestoimaan elokuvan väärää kuvaa sotilaiden kokemista todellisista julmuuksista. Tarkempi kuva saatiin sittemmin Guantanamosta.
ellauri332.html on line 622: Elokuvakriitikot ja fanit syyttivät elokuvantekijöitä liiallisesta kaupallistuksesta ja kohdistamisesta pienille lapsille. George Lucas totesi, että " nämä elokuvat ovat lapsille, mutta he [fanit] eivät halua myöntää sitä... On pieni joukko faneja, jotka eivät pidä koomista helpotuksesta. He haluavat elokuvien olevan kovia, kuten The Terminator, ja he järkyttyvät ja tulevat hyvin tuomitsevaksi kaikesta, mikä liittyy lapsellisuuteen ." Rob Coleman, joka johti animaatiotiimiä Industrial Light & Magicissa , muisteli myöhemmin kertoneensa Lucasille, että tiimi ennusti Jar Jar -hahmolle epäonnistumisen; Lucas kertoi hänelle, että hän esitteli erityisesti Jar Jarin elokuvaan herättääkseen 12-vuotiaiden ja sitä nuorempien lasten huomion. Huhtikuussa 2019, Star Wars Celebrationin aikana, ennen The Phantom Menacen 20-vuotisjuhla vuotta juhlivaa paneelia, George Lucas nimesi Jar Jarin suosikkihahmokseen Star Warsissa.
ellauri332.html on line 682: Eli takkupartainen E.Saarismainen "muukalainen" Colombo-takki päällä yrittää pelastaa epätoivoisen psykologian professorin itsemurhalta. Kukaan ei tiedä, mistä arvoituksellinen muukalainen tulee, hänen nimestään tai historiastaan. Mutta hän on ex-biljonääri (mitenniin ex?), maailman 3. rikkain kaveri, joka on vaan lakannut ajamasta partaansa. Hän huutaa, että modernit yhteiskunnat ovat tehneet itsestään globaalin saattohoitokeskuksen. Kiehtovalla retoriikalla hän alkaa houkutella seuraajia myydäkseen unelmiaan. Viehättäessään ihmisiä ja vapauttaessaan heidät rutiinin orjuudesta hän saa myös monia vihollisia. Onko hän auktoriteetti vai vain hullu tuntematon, vaiko molempia? Romaani, joka saa sinut nauramaan ja itkemään, mutta ennen kaikkea ajattelemaan pieniä ruusunpunaisia ajatuxia.
ellauri332.html on line 718: Whitstable Pearl kuuluu britti tönkköhumoristisiin kökkösarjoihin. Siinä liikutaan ihan persupiireissä. Kaikki ovat kouluttamattomia xenofoobisia landepaukkuja jotka juo kaljaa pullonsuusta ja syö perinteistä kebaabia ja pizzoja. Punkero pää-ämmyrkäinen on viisikymppinen, yhtä punkero depressiivinen puolimutiainen on Johnia vuotta nuorempi. Lapset jää kyllä niiltä saamatta. Juuri paljastettiin että mulatin sidekick onkin lepakko. Siitäkään ei sitten enää ole häiriötä. Uuvuttavan pitkästyttävä "romanssi" punkeroiden kesken nytkähti juuri eteenpäin kun saatiin potkituxi ämmyrkäisen musta poika pihalle ja masixesta leskimieheltä liian laiha leski samantien huut helkkariin. Onnen tiellä on enää ämmyrkäisen homssu äisky, Kirsin ikätoveri nosy Parker Dolly. Se on sitten saanut tyttärensä 15-vuotiaana, tuskin ylläri. Tämä vielä vanhainkotiin niin rannikko on kirkas. Siinä tarvitaan kyllä vankka peti kun nää hylkeet pääsee vällyihin.
ellauri333.html on line 77: Cellular Jail, the British Indian prison on the Andaman and Nicobar Islands, was known as Kala Pani: an incarceration in this jail threatened the convicts with the loss of caste and the resulting social exclusion.
ellauri333.html on line 98: Seleucus multa in Oriente post divisionem inter socios regni Macedonici bella gessit. Principio Babyloniam cepit; inde auctis ex victoria viribus Bactrianos expugnavit. Transitum deinde in Indiam fecit, quae post mortem Alexandra, veluti a cervicibus iugo servitutis excusso, praefectos eius occiderat. Auctor libertatis Sandrocottus fuerat, sed titulum libertatis post victoriam in servitutem verterat ; siquidem occupato regno populum, quem ab externa dominatione vindicaverat, ipse servitio premebat. Fuit de humili quidem genere natus, sed ad regni potestatem maiestate numinis inpulsus. Quippe cum procacitate sua Nandrum regem offendisset, interfici a rege iussus salutem pedum celeritate quaesierat Ex qua fatigatione cum somno captus iaceret, leo ingentis formae ad dormientem accessit sudoremque profluentem lingua ei detersit expergefactumque blande reliquit. Hoc prodigio primum ad spem regni inpulsus contractis latronibus Indos ad novitatem regni sollicitavit. Molienti deinde bellum adversus praefectos Alexandri elephantus ferus infinitae magnitudinis ultra se obtulit et veluti domita mansuetudine eum tergo excepit duxque belli et proeliator insignis fuit. Sic adquisito regno Sandrocottus ea tempestate, qua Seleucus futurae magnitudinis fundamenta iaciebat, Indiam possidebat, cum quo facta pactione Seleucus conpositisque in Oriente rebus in bellum Antigoni descendit.
ellauri333.html on line 119: Patna (/ˈpætnə, ˈpʌt-/ Hindi: [ˈpəʈnaː] ⓘ), historically known as Pataliputra, is the capital and largest city of the state of Bihar in India. According to the United Nations, as of 2018, Patna had a population of 2.35 million, making it the 19th largest city in India. Covering 250 square kilometres (97 sq mi) and over 2.5 million people, its urban agglomeration is the 18th largest in India. Patna also serves as the seat of Patna High Court. The Buddhist, Hindu and Jain pilgrimage centres of Vaishali, Rajgir, Nalanda, Bodh Gaya and Pawapuri are nearby and Patna City is a sacred city for Sikhs as the tenth Sikh Guru, Guru Gobind Singh was born here. The modern city of Patna is mainly on the southern bank of the river Ganges. The city also straddles the rivers Sone, Gandak and Punpun. The city is approximately 35 kilometres (22 mi) in length and 16 to 18 kilometres (9.9 to 11.2 mi) wide.
ellauri333.html on line 143: Meritorious is obedience to mother and father. Liberality to friends, acquaintances, and relatives, to Brahmanas and Sramanas (L e. Buddhist monks) is meritorious. Abstention from killing animals is meritorious. Moderation in expenditure (and) moderation in possessions are meritorious' (III, D).
ellauri333.html on line 144: ' Abstention from killing animals, abstention from hurting living beings, courtesy to relatives, courtesy to Brahmanas and Sramanas, obedience to mother and father, obedience to the aged ' (IV, C).
ellauri333.html on line 146: ' Proper courtesy to slaves and servants, obedience to mother (and) father, liberality to friends, acquaintances, and relatives, to Brahmanas and Sramanas, (and) abstention from killing animals 9 (XI, C).
ellauri333.html on line 147: ' Obedience to those who receive high pay, obedience to mother and father, obedience to elders, proper courtesy to friends, acquaintances, companions, and relatives, to slaves and servants, and firm devotion' (CIII, G).
ellauri333.html on line 149: Finally, the pillar-edict VII, section HH, speaks of a progress 'in obedience to mother and father,- in obedience to elders, in courtesy to the aged, in courtesy to Brahmanas and Sramanas, to the poor and distressed, and even to slaves and servants.
ellauri333.html on line 162: Noble deeds of morality and the practice of morality consist in this, that compassion, liberality, truthfulness, purity, gentleness, and goodness, will thus be promoted among men ' ; while the pillaredict II (B, C) says : — ' What does morality include ? few sins, many virtuous deeds, compassion, liberality, truthfulness, purity.
ellauri333.html on line 227: Bhakti movement saints such as Samarth Ramdas and Narendra Modi have positioned angry Hanuman as a symbol of nationalism and resistance to persecution. The Vaishnava saint Madhvacharya said that whenever Vishnu incarnates on earth, Vayu accompanies him and aids his work of preserving dharma. In the modern era, Hanuman's iconography and temples have been increasingly common. He is viewed as the ideal combination of "strength, heroic initiative and assertive excellence" and "loving, emotional devotion to his personal god Rama", as Shakti and Bhakti. In later literature, he is sometimes portrayed as the patron god of martial arts such as wrestling and acrobatics, as well as activities such as meditation and diligent scholarship. He symbolises the human excellences of inner self-control, faith, and service to a cause, hidden behind the first impressions of a being who looks like a Vanära. Hanuman is considered to be a bachelor and an involuntary celibate.
ellauri333.html on line 248: Hanuman, according to mythology, is the illegitimate son of the wind god Vayu and the apsara Anjana. Vayu was formally married to the daughter of the divine architect Vishwakarma but that did not stop him from bedding other females. He tried to entice a hundred daughters of King Kushnabh and when rejected, cursed them to become hunch-backed crones. He went on to sire another illegitimate son, Bhima, with Kunti, the teenaged princess married to an impotent husband (Pandu) who prayed to the virile Vayu to oblige her with a child. From his volatile macho father, Hanuman inherited the ability to fly, and an enormous appetite that he shared with his step-brother Bhima. Legend has it that the new-born Hanuman was so hungry that he tried to gobble up the sun thinking it was a fruit. He was made to cough out this glowing morsel when Indra shot a thunderbolt and destroyed his chin (Hanu), hence the name Hanuman.
ellauri333.html on line 252: Tulsidas’ liberal view of a true Bhakt, however, expresses the feudal male view that the state and its laws, as they exist, are rational. So Ram, according to the laws, kills the Dalit Shambook for gobbling tapas (penance) and Bali for daring to take away his (presumed dead) brother’s wife, and exiles Sita, and the Bhakt accepts it. Valmiki’s Sita sees that masculine mores of male kings relate to a specific moral code that forgives Caesar but not his wife. That male power exists and sex equality does not.
ellauri333.html on line 256: Among the military fraternities of ancient tribes, all young males were initiated into the art of killing anyone perceived as a threat to the tribe. Such ceremonies followed rituals whereby the young men stripped and dressed in animal skin (often also donning a fierce animal mask) and worked themselves into a bestial rage. Rage removes inhibitions. Rage alone makes the gentle, genial young man next door who listens to film songs all day suddenly go berserk and join a mob as killer of the perceived enemy. Bearskin and Berserk, the two words incidentally are synonymous in German. The question is, how do you awaken the killer instinct in a male turning even a laid-back herbivore into a blood thirsty predator? Well here's how:
ellauri333.html on line 287: Vittu onkohan enää mitään maata mihin ei tää myrkky ei olisi jo levinnyt jenkkilästä niiden tuhannesti kirottujen someviestimien avulla? Ei varmaan ole. Globaalinen murkkupesä alkaa kiehua kun lämpötila nousee sietämättömiin huippulukemiin. Loppuu tää naisten vallankumous, nyt on kumottava naiset vaikka väkivallalla, ettei mustakallojen pääluku meitä ohita.
ellauri333.html on line 315: Herulit katosivat historiasta langobardien valloituxen aikoihin. Geticassa Jordanes kirjoittaa, että herulit väittivät olevansa Scandzan pisin kansa. Jordanes kirjoittaa edelleen, että kaikki Scandzan kansat "ylittävät saksalaiset kooltaan ja hengeltään". Sidonius Apollinaris kirjoitti, että herulilla oli siniharmaat silmät. Procopius ei pitänyt heruleista:
ellauri333.html on line 326: The idea of a surname as it is understood today, is a colonial addition in most cultures around the globe such that it has always been a part of Western naming systems. Therefore, even in India, the need for a ‘surname’ as such, is believed to have emerged with the influence of the British Raj and other colonial powers.
ellauri333.html on line 338: Owing to the fact that there was a robust anti-caste campaign in south India, many communities collectively decided to renounce caste-based surnames. However, this is not quite the case with northern Indian communities. In fact, for a very long time, many south Indian communities did not even have a designated surname and instead added an initial against their given names, for example, R. Madhavi indicating Ranganathan Madhavi, wherein Madhavi would be the given name. Like Mohannon.
ellauri333.html on line 366: His thesis was on "The problem of the rupee: Its origin and its solution". He worked as a private tutor, as an accountant, and established an investment consulting business, but it failed when his clients learned that he was an untouchable. In 1918, he became professor of political economy in the Sydenham College of Commerce and Economics in Mumbai. Although he was successful with the students, other professors objected to his sharing a drinking-water jug with them.
ellauri333.html on line 416: Kymmenen gurua, Guru Nanak Sahibista Guru Gobind Singh Sahibiin
ellauri333.html on line 425: Maharaja Ranjit Singh kuuntelee Guru Granth Sahibia lausuttavan Kultaisessa temppelissä Amritsarissa. Harpreet Kaur Chandi, brittiläinen sikhi ja ensimmäinen nainen, joka on päässyt etelänavalle yksin ja ilman tukia. Sikhi Bob Singh Dhillon on ensimmäinen indokanadalainen miljardööri. Mastercardin toimitusjohtaja oli sikhi nimeltä Ajaypal Singh Banga. Urheilussa sikheihin kuuluu Englannin krikettipelaaja Monty Panesar ; entinen metrin juoksija Milkha Singh ; hänen poikansa, ammattigolfari Jeev Milkha Singh ; Intialainen painija ja näyttelijä Dara Singh ; entiset Intian jääkiekkojoukkueen kapteenit Sandeep Singh, Ajitpal Singh ja Balbir Singh Sr.; entinen intialainen krikettikapteeni Bishen Singh Bedi ; Harbhajan Singh, Intian menestynein krikettikeilaaja ; Yuvraj Singh, maailmancupin voittaja allrounder; Maninder Singh, maailmanmestaruuskilpailun voittaja; ja Navjot Singh Sidhu, entinen intialainen krikettipelaaja, josta tuli poliitikko.
ellauri333.html on line 454: kalle Kartārpurin kaupungin. Vasta täällä hän tuli varsinaisesti tunnetuksi nimellä Guru Nānak. Kaupungissa hänen seuraajansa eli sikhit alkoivat elää hänen uskonnollisten opetustensa mukaan, joihin kuului esimerkiksi rukoilu kolme kertaa päivässä ja yhteisölliset keittiöt (langar), joissa hindulaisuudesta poiketen kaikki sikhit syövät samassa tilassa yhdenvertaisuuden osoituksena. Guru Nānak myös kirjoitti gurmukhī-kirjoitusjärjestelmällä joukon hymnejä, joista tuli sikhiläisyyden pyhän teoksen Adi Granthin ydin. Kuollessaan vuonna 1539 Guru Nānak nimitti seuraajakseen Guru Angadin ja loi näin gurujen linjan, joka jatkui aina kymmenennen gurun Gobind Singhin kuolemaan saakka vuonna 1708.
ellauri333.html on line 456: 1500-luvun loppuun mennessä sikhiläisyys oli kasvanut siten, että aluetta hallinnut islamilainen Suurmogulien valtakunta alkoi pitää liikettä uhkana. Tämä johti viidennen Gurun Arjan Devin teloitukseen vuonna 1606. Arjan Devin teloituksen jälkeen sikhit julistivat tätä guruna seuranneen Guru Hargobindin paitsi uskonnolliseksi, myös maalliseksi hallitsijakseen. Hänen johdollaan sikhit jättivät Punjabin ja asettuivat Himalajan aluskukkuloille, jossa he pysyivät 1600-luvun ajan. Guru Tegh Bahadurin yritykset luoda sikhiyhteisö uudestaan Punjabiin päättyivät hänen teloitukseensa vuonna 1675. Kymmenes Guru Gobind Singh loi ajatuksen khālsā rājn eli Jumalan kuningaskunnan perustamisesta. Gobind Singhin muihin uusiin opetuksiin kuului viiden K:n sääntö, joka viittaa leikkaamattoman tukan (kes), kamman (kanghā), miekan (kirpā), teräksisen rannekorun (karhā) ja pitkien housujen (kachhā) pitämiseen. Kuollessaan Gobind Singh katkaisi gurujen linjan nimetessään ennen kuolemaansa gurujen edustajaksi hymnien kokoelman Guru Granth Sahibin.
ellauri333.html on line 477: Guru Hargobind (1595–1644)
ellauri333.html on line 485: Guru Gobind Singh (1666–1708)
ellauri333.html on line 537:
ellauri333.html on line 542: Suorasoittosarjat ovat yhtä trolley brobleemaa. Andamaaneilla oli valittava oman kakaran ja 5000 tuntemattoman savunaaman välillä. Vielä vaikeampi keissi oli Bodies-scifi leffassa. Jos jätät kääntämättä vaihdetta, uhreja on 1/2 miljoonaa, mutta ize asiassa ne kuoli jo 30 vuotta sitten. (Ei sitäpaizi 500 kiloapinalla vielä kuuhun mennä.) Jos käännät vaihdetta ja petät Mannixin, saattaa tuntematon määrä apinoita liueta huizin saharaan, kenties monta kertaa enemmän. Mitä tekee Unorthodox eli Iris Maplewood? Sen kannattaisi kazoa mallia 2-vuotiaalta, joka siirtää kaikki putative uhrit samalle raiteelle ja ajaa sitten junalla yli koko porukan. Right on pikkuapina! Way to go!
ellauri333.html on line 544: Daniel Defoe ja Iris taittaa peistä siitä onko kaikki determinististä vai joku valintamyymälä. Is this cheese? Täysin yhdentekevää. Aikamatkustajat eivät problematisoi sitä miten käy jos menee muuttamaan juuri tätä historiaa. Eihän se sitten enää ole tää. Vähän sama ongelma kuin sielunvaelluxessa: jos musta tulee joku muu elukka niin en ole enää mä, ja miten käy pikkuveitikan? Enhän nytkään muista mikä olin ennen tätä rundia. Vitun turhanpäivästä. Mixei voi vaan uskoa ettei tästä tule tämän kummempaa? Kohta pölistään Hietaniemessä tuhkaläjänä. Loppuu tämä pölinä.
ellauri334.html on line 116: Juipit on kuin jotain hobitteja. Seon Mulkin kopioita.
ellauri334.html on line 167: Okej! Nu är det rättan tid att gräva upp det här, när vi ingenting gemensamt har med sossarna. Visserligen talar våra nya vänner persurna para finska, men det är ju att vänta. Och Åland behöver inte vara oberoende, det förstår vi alldeles bra i nutida förhållanden. Vid närmare eftertanke, de inhemska språken kunde vara bara svenska och amerikansk engelska, det vackra språket av landets försvarare.
ellauri334.html on line 195: Viimeisin hänen projekteistaan on "Robottien armeijan" luominen suorittamaan tehtäviä, joissa ukrainalaisten sotilaiden olisi usein vaarannettava henkensä.
ellauri334.html on line 197: Viime aikoina on myös ilmoitettu robottien luomisesta, jotka voivat laskea ukrainalaisia miinoja (niitä on tuhansittain) ja kaivaa esiin Venäjän joukkojen maahan jättämiä jätteitä.
ellauri334.html on line 296: Bob Culp. MBA from Southern Wesleyan University (Graduated 2008):
ellauri334.html on line 327: Second, one of the other apostles was also named “Judas”. To differentiate the 2, “Judas Iscariot” was because his father was called “Iscariot”. Why? It is understood that they were from the Judean town of Kerioth-hezon. The other “Judas” was referred to as “son of James”. He was also known as Thaddaeus. The name was changed because nobody liked to be called Jew anymore.
ellauri334.html on line 334: The name Judaism stems from Judah, one of the sons of Jacob, who is credited to have lived around 1500 to 2000 BCE and was the founder of the tribe of Judah… (more)
ellauri334.html on line 370: Tämän lisääntyvän jakautumisen taustalla on ensinnäkin Yhdistyneen kuningaskunnan politiikan jatkuva uudelleensuuntautuminen. On olemassa liike, jonka voimme jäljittää ennen vuotta 2015, pois taloudesta politiikan ensisijaisena kysymyksenä. Pääkysymys ei ole enää vapaat markkinat vastaan valtion väliintulo, vaan pikemminkin nationalismi ja perinteinen identiteetti vs. globalismi ja kulttuurinen liberalismi. On siirrytty GANTT-nelikentän pystyaxelille. Keskiluokan pahimmat viholliset eivät ole enää porhot, vaan ne pelkäävät matuja. Vuodesta 2016 lähtien sekä oikeiston että vasemmiston järjestöt ovat nähneet yhä epätoivoisempia ponnisteluja kääntääkseen tämän uudelleenjärjestelyn ja palauttaakseen politiikan entiseen muotoonsa. Rishi Sunakin päätös potkaista Braverman osoittaa, että tämä taistelu on nyt päässyt viimeiseen vaiheeseensa oikealla. On tosiasia, että konservatiivipuolue on kohtaamassa katastrofaalisen tappion seuraavissa vaaleissa. Oikeistolehdistön kanta on epäselvä, mutta se menee luultavasti kansalliskonservatiiviselle puolelle.
ellauri335.html on line 457: – Robotyne oli tavoitteemme ensimmäisenä päivänä, ja tiedättehän, miten se meni. Vihollinen tiesi kaikki reittimme etukäteen, ja heidän tykistönsä oli suunnattu meihin. Se oli kaaosta. Jotkut komppanioistamme oli tuhottu vartissa, jotkut 30 minuutissa. Saimme tietää, että panssarimiehemme eivät olleet koskaan ampuneet Leopardeilla. He harjoittelivat neuvostovalmisteisilla T-72-tankeilla koko ajan ja heidät lähetettiin rintamalle toisenlaisten tankkien kanssa.
ellauri335.html on line 464: obotyne.jpg" />
ellauri335.html on line 465: Ukrainalaissotilas pyörii tuhoutuneen ukrainalaistankin luona Robotynen kylän lähellä elokuun lopulla kuin syysampiainen Rauhixen kuistin räystäällä.
ellauri335.html on line 496: Amnesty International is accusing Israel of committing war crimes in two separate reported strikes on Gaza on October 19 and 20, which killed 46 civilians, including 20 children.
ellauri336.html on line 55: Sapatin Samara (10b) sanoo, että ihmisen ei tule tehdä eroa lastensa välillä, antaa toisilleen etuoikeus. Mutta Hyvä kirja on sitä täynnä: Aabel ohitti Kainin, Iisak Ismaelin, Jaakob Esaun, Josef sisaruksensa, Efraim ohitti Manassen jne. Ja eikö Israelin etuuskohtelu muihin apinoihin nähden ole valtava esimerkki? Vanhemmuus on kova määräys. Aina kun tarvitsemme ohjausta elämässä, chossidin ensimmäinen asia on kääntyä Rebben puoleen. Lue kaikki, mitä Rebbe sanoi chinuchin prioriteeteista artikkelista "Puhtaiden sydämien ja mielen kasvattaminen: Lastemme valmistaminen elämään".
ellauri336.html on line 310: The Rabbis asked Kimchis what she had done to merit having seven sons serve as Kohein Gadol (High Priest). She responded that the beams of her house never saw her with her hair uncovered. While the Rabbis rejected her hypothesis (because many other women have acted likewise), the extent to which she observed this law is still presented as an example of meritorious behavior (Yoma 47a; see Yerushalmi Megilla 1:10 for the accepted opinion as to the merit of Kimchis);
ellauri336.html on line 314: There are other examples I could cite but the point is clear: our Sages universally agree that a married woman covering her hair is part of the laws of tzniyus. But shaving hair off? That’s a practice observed in a few particular communities; it’s not a sweeping societal norm among Orthodox Jews in general.
ellauri336.html on line 320: This is not even the practice of all Hasidic communities. There are some Hasidic sects where the leadership may consider it obligatory for their adherents, others where it may be an optional practice, and still others where it may be virtually unheard of.
ellauri336.html on line 345: The Zohar (parshas Naso) that Rabbi Jack cites doesn’t say anything about mikvah. What it says is that the beams of a woman’s house should not see her hair. This is the meritorious practice observed by Kimchis (and many other women of her time) mentioned in the Talmud. Kimchi IS delicious BTW.
ellauri336.html on line 384: I’m an American born Muslim woman and I see many similarities of Jews with Islam as there are a lot of intersections of all three monotheistic faiths. I do not believe in covering my hair, but if one were to look at Nativity sets that are displayed during Christmas and look at Christian nuns habits we will observe a modesty all three faiths have in common. I notice more people objecting to women that choose and I use that word loosely, to observe modesty than to object to women or men that show little in clothing modesty..it is very subjective anyway on what is considered modest. Also, it seems the people who take it upon themselves to enforce these rules are committing a greater sin of being cruel and punitive. Where is the mercy and love all religions preach?
ellauri336.html on line 413: mind shaving as this is there understanding of Jewish law. In places where there is coercion around shaving, that’s definitely a problem. Men have plenty of stringent commandments as well in the most insular circles.
ellauri336.html on line 417: I completely disagree. I CHOSE to “up my observance level game” all on my very own. I dress more modestly and never leave the house with my hair uncovered. My husband and kids are supportive of my “modern orthodox” observance level even though they do not share it. No one, but NO ONE forced this on me…I don’t shave my head but I would if I had the guts to. I just find my hair annoying.. 🙂
ellauri336.html on line 511: So if someone has several sons and they all become K”G, would that not mean that either at least some or most of them died in her lifetime, or they became tamei while serving as K”G? How could either of those scenarios be considered a sachar for her tznius? Not trying to be disrespectful – I am having real difficulty understanding the positive aspect of this quote in the Gemarah, when obviously something not so good had to have occurred in order for Kimchis to have so many sons who served in that capacity within her lifetime.
ellauri336.html on line 520: Popa probably didn’t realize how much he would get done, and when he ran out of printed sheets, he wrote the last three amudim from memory and then chazzered them.
ellauri336.html on line 602: Yet Thunberg apparently does not have any problem with being silent while people and families are being slaughtered. Because nowhere in any of her social media feeds did she say a word about the attacks on Israel. The young activist did not offer a specific thought or a prayer for any of the innocent civilians targeted in Hamas’s brutal attacks nor condemn its use of violent terrorism. She couldn’t even spare a syllable for the Israeli babies that were killed by Hamas terrorists! Let alone poor unborn men in the cervices of Israeli girls!
ellauri336.html on line 614: Tämä "uutinen" on vuodelta 2019, ennen pandemiaa. The state – which leads the way as US output of oil and gas is forecast to rise 25% in the next decade – is intensifying its production pipeline by pipeline. In the same month that Greta Thunberg addressed a UN summit and millions of people took part in a global climate strike, lawmakers in America’s leading oil- and gas-producing state of Texas made a statement of their own.
ellauri336.html on line 624: The scale of new production is “staggering”, according to an analysis by Global Witness, a campaign group, with Texas leading the way as US output of oil and gas is forecast to rise by 25% over the next decade. This makes it a “looming carbon timebomb”, the group believes, in a period when global oil and gas production needs to drop by 40% to mitigate the worst impacts of the climate crisis.
ellauri336.html on line 634: While there are some indicators of a slowdown in the growth rate, Chevron’s president of North American exploration and production, Steve Green, told an industry event in October that the oil major sees a “boom boom boom kind of economy” with a “long, healthy pace of activity in the Permian and Texas for decades to come”, Bloomberg reported.
ellauri336.html on line 636: The Permian’s fortunes are not dependent on the whims of one or two dominant companies – there are hundreds of operators, from tiny independents to huge multinationals such as Chevron, ExxonMobil, BP, Shell and ConocoPhillips, many of the corporations which, as the Guardian has reported, are behind a large proportion of the planet’s carbon emissions and are poised to flood markets with an additional 7m barrels per day over the next decade.
ellauri336.html on line 646: “We probably have some of the worst air that we’ve ever had out here in west Texas” Collins said. “Every night we flare out here, let off natural gas, a lot of it really fugitive emissions because we don’t have the regulators out here.”
ellauri336.html on line 658: Busby hopes natural disasters might accelerate change by altering the economic equation. Fortunately, man made disasters in Ukraine and Israel work just the opposite. The Gulf coast’s vulnerability to storms potentially made more severe by global heating – such as Harvey, which flooded much of the Houston area in 2017 - could damage ports, refineries and petrochemical plants, erode financial markets’ enthusiasm for fossil fuel investments, hurt companies’ bottom lines and push climate concerns higher up the priority list for voters in traditionally conservative suburban and rural areas. Small hope.
ellauri338.html on line 32: Jaakobin paini on Vanhan testamentin Ensimmäisen Mooseksen kirjan (1. Moos. 32:23–33) sekä Hoosean kirjan 12. luvussa kuvattu tapahtuma, jossa Jaakob painii koko yön ajan tuntemattoman miehen kanssa voittaen tämän aamun koittaessa. Voitettu mies nimeää Jaakobin uudelleen Isra-Eliksi (hepreaksi "El Zorro kamppailee" tai "El Coyote hallitsee"). Jaakob itse luonnehti tapahtunutta: "Minä olen nähnyt Jumalan kasvoista kasvoihin, ja silti olen elossa." Jaakob rakensi tuon tapahtuman johdosta alttarin antaen sille nimeksi "El-Elohe-Israel" (1.Moos 33:20), "El, Israelin Jumala".
ellauri338.html on line 34: Jaakobista tuli Israelin 12 heimon kantaisä. Tilanne tapahtui Jaakobin matkalla takaisin Kaanaaseen, luvattuun maahan. Aihe on saanut suurta suosiota kuvataiteilijoiden keskuudessa ja sen ovat tulkinneet mm. Rembrandt (1659), Gustave Doré (1855), Eugène Delacroix (1861), Alexander Louis Leloir (1865), Léon Bonnat (1876), Gustave Moreau (1878), Paul Gauguin (1888).
ellauri338.html on line 44: Luulin että mulla on toi Schellingin kärhämöinnin pelikirja 60-luvulta, muttei ainakaan heti löytynyt vintistä. Schelling sai jenkkikärhämöinnin teorioinnista Irakin ryöstöretkien aikaan 2005 talousnoobelin. Osuvaa, sillä rahnastahan sodassa on kymysys. Sota on noususuhdannetta kaikille, jotka tuottavat jotain rikki menevää. Olisin kerrannut sieltä liitteen Nuclear Weapons and Limited War. Se vaikuttaa jälleen ajankohtaiselta.
ellauri338.html on line 52: Schelling was elected president in 1991, and, in his presidential address “Some Economics of Global Warming” (1992), he advanced an argument in favour of a large carbon footprint as a deterrent for those with a smaller one. Talk softly but carry a big parabellum.
ellauri338.html on line 63: Jaakobin kamppailua enkelin kanssa kuvataan Genesiksen kirjassa ( luku 32:22–32 ; viitataan myös Hoosean kirjaan , luku 12:3–5 ). Kyseessä olevasta " enkelistä " viitataan Genesiksen kirjassa "ihmisenä" ( אִישׁ : Ish ) ja " Jumalana " ( אֵל : El ), kun taas Hoosea viittaa "enkeliin" ( מַלְאָךְ : Malakh ). Kertomus sisältää Jaakobin uudelleennimeämisen Israeliksi (etymologisoituna "taistelee Jumalan kanssa ").
ellauri338.html on line 65: Genesiksen patriarkaalisessa kertomuksessa Jaakob vietti yön yksin joen rannalla matkallaan takaisin Kanaaniin . Hän kohtaa "miehen", joka kamppailee hänen kanssaan aamuun asti. Lopulta Jaakobille annetaan nimi Israel ja hänet siunataan , kun taas "mies" kieltäytyy antamasta omaa nimeään. Jaakob sitten nimeää paikan, jossa he painivat Penuelin ( פְּנוּאֵל : "Jumalan kasvot" tai "Jumalan kasvot"). Masoreettinen teksti kuuluu seuraavasti:
ellauri338.html on line 67: Samana yönä hän nousi ja otti kaksi vaimoaan, kaksi piikaansa ja yksitoista lastaan ja ylitti Jabbokin kaakelin. Hän otti heidät ja lähetti ne virran yli, samoin kuin kaiken, mitä hänellä oli. Ja Jaakob jäi yksin; ja eräs mies paini hänen kanssaan päivän koittoon asti. Kun mies näki, ettei hän voittanut Jaakobia, hän kosketti hänen reiteensä; ja Jaakobin reisi oli irronnut nivelestä, kun hän paini hänen kanssaan. Sitten hän sanoi: "Päästä minut menemään, sillä päivä koittaa." Mutta Jaakob sanoi: "En päästä sinua menemään, ellet siunaa minua." Ja hän sanoi hänelle: "Mikä sinun nimesi on?" Ja hän sanoi: "Jaakob." Sitten hän sanoi: "Sinun nimeäsi älköön enää kutsuttako Jaakobiksi, vaan Israeliksi, sillä sinä olet taistellut Jumalan ja ihmisten kanssa ja olet voittanut." Sitten Jaakob kysyi häneltä: "Kerro minulle nimesi." Mutta hän sanoi: "Miksi sinä kysyt minun nimeäni?" Ja siellä hän siunasi häntä. Niin Jaakob antoi paikan nimeksi Peniel ja sanoi: "Sillä minä olen nähnyt Jumalan kasvoista kasvoihin, ja silti minun henkeni on säilynyt." Aurinko nousi hänen päälleen, kun hän ohitti Penuelin ontuen reidensä takia. Sen tähden israelilaiset eivät vielä tänäkään päivänä syö lonkan jänteitä, jotka ovat reiden ontelossa, koska hän kosketti Jaakobin reiden onteloa lonkan jänteessä. – Mooseksen kirja 32:22–32
ellauri338.html on line 69: Kertomus sisältää useita näytelmiä heprealaisten nimien – Peniel (tai Penuel ) , Israel – merkityksestä sekä samankaltaisuudesta Jaakobin nimen juureen (joka kuulostaa heprean kielestä "kantapäälle") ja sen yhdistelmästä. Jaakobin ontuminen ( Yaʿaqob ) saattaa heijastaa joen nimeä, Jabbok ( Yabbok יַבֹּק, joka kuulostaa "kierolta" joelta), ja Nahmanides (5. Moos. 2:10 Jeshurunista) antaa etymologian "joka kävelee vinoon" nimelle Jacob. Eli Klenkka.
ellauri338.html on line 71: Heprealaisessa tekstissä sanotaan, että se on "mies" (אִישׁ, LXX ἄνθρωπος, Vulgate vir ), jonka kanssa Jaakob painii, mutta myöhemmin Jaakob tunnistaa tämän "miehen" Jumalaan ( Elohim ). Hoosea 12:4 viittaa lisäksi "enkeliin" ( malak ). Tämän jälkeen Onkeloksen Targum tarjoaa "koska olen nähnyt Herran enkelin kasvoista kasvoihin", ja Palestiinan Targum antaa "koska olen nähnyt Herran enkelit kasvoista kasvoihin".
ellauri338.html on line 73: Jaakobin painivastustajan henkilöllisyys on kiistanalainen, jota kutsutaan eri tavoin unihahmoksi, profeetalliseksi näyksi, enkeliksi (kuten Mikael ja Samael ), suojelevaksi jokihengeksi, Jeesukseksi tai Jumalaksi.
ellauri338.html on line 75: Jacobin painissa saaman lonkkavamman seurauksena juutalainen laki kieltää iskiashermon (gid hanasheh) syömisen, joka kulkee lantion kautta ja vaatii sen poistamista lihasta väk väk nikkur -prosessin kautta, kuten 1. Mooseksen kirjan 32:33 pykälässä (yllä) mainitaan.
ellauri338.html on line 80: Bodies-suorasoittosarjan homopari vetää lonkkaa sylityxin. Lonkka meni sijoiltaan, jonka johdosta Jaakobille tuli Issias. Vasemmalla Rembrandtin visio. Keskellä DI Hillinghead, Oikealla John White Alexander, Isabellan maalari.
ellauri338.html on line 91: Raamatun mukaan israelilaiset ovat Jaakobin jälkeläisiä, joka myöhemmin nimettiin Israeliksi. Kanaanin ankaran kuivuuden jälkeen Jaakob ja hänen kaksitoista poikaansa pakenivat Egyptiin, missä he lopulta muodostivat Israelin kaksitoista heimoa. Israelilaiset karkasivat myöhemmin pois Egyptin orjuudesta ja vielä myöhemmin Mooses toi heidät takaisin Kanaaniin; he lopulta valloittivat Kanaanin Joosuan johdolla. Useimmat nykyajan tutkijat ovat yhtä mieltä siitä, että Toora ei anna autenttista selvitystä israelilaisten alkuperästä, vaan pitävät sitä heidän kansallisen myyttinsä meeminä. Yleisesti oletetaan kuitenkin, että kertomuksella voi olla "historiallinen ydin". Kenties veljensä sopan syönyt Jaakko oikeasti voitti enkelin pystypainissa kiivettyään tikapuita pitkin taivaaseen.
ellauri338.html on line 179: Kazoin äsken videon jossa 2 karvahattuista sloboa ajoi vanhalla ZIL-kuorma-autolla umpimezässä pomiloiden kuin puskaryssät. ZIL-157, se vasta oli jämerä gruzovik. Selviää maastosta luin maastosta. Jos juuttuu kiinni vähävenäläiseen peltoon kelirikkoaikana, senkun peruuttaa. Uudempi Ural ei ole läheskään sen veroinen. Uutta ajoneuvoa käytettiin Venäjän hyökätessä Ukrainaan vuonna 2022; Oryxspioenkop analysoi valokuva- ja videodataa ja havaitsi, että Venäjä oli 4. syyskuuta 2023 mennessä menettänyt ainakin 939 Ural-4320-konetta (mukaan lukien 165 tankkeria). Zilit olisivat takulla vielä liikenteessä.
ellauri338.html on line 202: William Pokhlobkin [ru] väitti, että kiovatyyliset kotletit keksittiin väitetysti vuonna 1912 Pietarissa ja niitä kutsuttiin "Novomykhailiv-kotletteiksi" läheisen Mykhailivin palatsin mukaan.
ellauri338.html on line 265: Bushin puhe herätti myös kritiikkiä kotona koskemattomuudesta, vaikka hän tuskin oli yksin siinä; vasta edellisenä vuonna Britannian pääministeri Margaret Thatcher oli julistanut, ettei hän voi avata suurlähetystöä Kiovassa enempää kuin San Franciscossa. Boston Globe kutsui sitä " Bushin liigaksi Kiovassa" pääkirjoituksessa, jossa hän kritisoi Bushia siitä, että hän "suomissi häntä liian syvästi saadakseen lohtua sisäisen kansallisen keskustelun toisella puolella". Sanomalehti katsoi, että Bush oli ollut epäreilu kielellään, erityisesti käyttämällä ilmauksia, kuten "itsemurhainen nationalismi", "etninen viha" ja "paikallinen despotismi", jotka sen mielestä "menivät liian pitkälle". 29. elokuuta 1991 Ken Safiren setä William Safire käytti New York Timesin kolumniaan nimetäkseen sen "Chicken Kiev" -puheeksi. Myöhemmin Safire kommentoi, että puhe oli saanut Bushin vaikuttamaan "vapauden vastaiselta" ja vaarantanut Yhdysvaltojen suhteet Ukrainan "nousevaan eurooppalaiseen valtaan". Mensch näitä amerikan juutalaisia.
ellauri339.html on line 211: Sojuz nerushimyj respublik svobodnyh Ensimmäinen kupletti
ellauri339.html on line 223: Slavsja, otetshestvo nashe svobodnoje Kertosäe
ellauri339.html on line 225: Kansojen ystävyys on luotettava tukikohta! 𝄆 Slavsja, Otetšestvo naše svobodnoje,
ellauri339.html on line 231: Johtaa meidät kommunismin voittoon! Slavsja, strana! My gordimsja toboi! 𝄇
ellauri339.html on line 235: Skvozj grozy sijalo nam solntse svobody Toinen kupletti
ellauri339.html on line 247: Slvasja, otetshestvo nashe svobodnoje
ellauri339.html on line 259: V pobede bessmertnyh idej kommunizma
ellauri339.html on line 271: Slavsja, Otetshesvo nashe svobodnoje
ellauri339.html on line 387: Dobjomsja my osvoboždenja Saavutamme vapautumisen
ellauri339.html on line 388: Svojeju sobstvennoi rukoi. Omalla kädelläni.
ellauri339.html on line 389: Tštob vor vernul nam vsjo, tšto vzjal on Että varas palauttaa meille kaiken, mitä hän otti,
ellauri339.html on line 390: Tštob duh tjurmy navek propal, Niin että vankilan henki katoaa ikuisesti,
ellauri339.html on line 431: Dobjomsja, tštoby ih ne stalo, Varmistetaan, että niitä ei ole olemassa
ellauri339.html on line 502: The British pop group Pet Shop Boys supported Pugacheva. Myös saksalainen rockmuusikko Udo Lindenberg ja ukrainalainen laulaja Svetlana Loboda ilmaisivat tukensa Pugatšovalle.
ellauri339.html on line 584: Ulkomaat yleisesti käytetyssä merkityksessä (meidän tapauksessamme länsi, ja on aika muuttaa tätä ajattelua) "vuotivat" Zelenskyn. Viimeinenkin ukrainafilian ja raivostuneen russofobian linnake, brittiläinen The Guardian, kaatui: julkaistiin artikkeli ”Putin on ottanut vallan Ukrainassa?”. Artikkelin johtopäätös on tämä: Ukrainan konflikti on menetetty, ja se vain pahenee. Arvovaltainen amerikkalainen aikakauslehti Foreign Affairs kirjoittaa, että Ukrainan tulisi tehdä aselepo Venäjän kanssa. The Wall Street Journal julkaisi artikkelin otsikolla "On aika lakata haaveilemasta Venäjän tappiosta". Tässä on myös hälyttävä hetki - ikään kuin kukaan ei kysyisi Venäjältä, ikään kuin tämä kaikki olisi mahdollista "ilman Venäjää". Kannattaa miettiä: miksi he ajattelevat näin lännessä ja mitä tehdä asialle Venäjällä? Usko minua, se ei ole vaikeaa, minulla on vastaus, mutta se on äärimmäisen, sanokaamme, "epäsuosittu".
ellauri339.html on line 601: Americans will be forgiven if they never hear this bad news, never mind be surprised by it if they did. The narrative which drove sports teams to wear blue and yellow patches and E Street Band member Steve Van Zandt to paint his guitar the Ukrainian colors was simple. Amidst a flood of propaganda, the story was always the same: Ukraine was pushing back the Russians with weapons provided by a broad range of agreeable NATO benefactors. Between Ukrainian jet fighter aces with improbable kill ratios to patriotic female sniper teams with improbable hair and makeup, Russia was losing. It would be a difficult but noble slog for “as long as it takes” to drive the Russians out.
ellauri339.html on line 612: Americans, both the people and their government, distracted by the greatest propaganda tools ever imagined (the media), seem capable of focusing on only one bright shiny object at a time. In the case of wars, a new bright shiny object must include two clear sides, one good and one pure evil, with one preferably an underdog, daily combat footage which can be obtained without too much danger, and a football game-like progression across a map that is easy to follow. It should not be boring. Ukraine was such a conflict and enjoyed almost a full two-year run.
ellauri339.html on line 643: Mitä tapahtui, kun tavalliset kansalaiset käyvät sotaa? Vapaaehtoiset ryntäsivät aukkoon. Yli 15 000 miestä ja naista, joista monet olivat Euromaidanin mielenosoitusten veteraaneja, virtasi rintamalle. He kokoontuivat pataljooniin, joilla oli joskus siteitä ultranationalistisiin ryhmiin, joita yhdisti russofobia ja pakkomielle ukrainalaiseen identiteettiin – joissakin tapauksissa rasismiin asti.
ellauri340.html on line 86: Lea oli heikkosilmäinen mutta Raakel hyvännäköinen. Jaakob nussi sitä ehkä enemmän mutta sai Leasta enemmän jälkeläisiä. Tästä enemmän albumissa 171.
ellauri340.html on line 445: Lainasin heräteostoxena Pasilan porno-osastosta v. 2019 antinazinobelisti Peter Handtagin kirjasen Abwesenheit (Poissa). Se on kirjoittajan mukaan satu. Ainakin se alkaa jollain vitun leffakamerazoomauxilla. Että mua kyrpii kun kirjailijat alkaa ryömiä coolimpien leffaohjaajien jaloissa ja nuolla niiden kenkiä. Ei näytä Peter kuule hyvältä... Nykykirjallisuuden suunnannäyttäjä, leck meinen Arsch. Muutenkin kirja vaikuttaa klischeiseltä kuin Pauio Coelho, tai joku tietokonepeli.
ellauri340.html on line 453: Tästä hemmosta tulee hakematta mieleen se Claude Simon jolta tuli samanlaista suoltoa, ja se myös aika sairas polakki joka harrasti pornografiaa. Gombrovicz tai jotain. Joo ja vielä 1 Kristina tädin mielihaahuilija, se Tataariaro-kaippari. Dino Buzzati. Kafka, Robbe-Grillet. Broch. Näitä piisaa.
ellauri340.html on line 467: Mitä vittua?! Tää kaverihan ON oikeasti filmiohjaaja? Ja käsikirjoittaja vielä, voi perkele. Mixi sellaselle piti antaa kirjallisuuden noobeli?? Koska leffat on tämän päivän litteratyyriä, niinkuin rokkirenkutuxet on lyrics, witness Robert Zimmermanin paukkupalkinto.
ellauri340.html on line 469: Peter Handke (saksa ääntäminen: [ˈpeːtɐ ˈhantkə]; syntynyt 6. joulukuuta 1942 eli jälkeen Stalingradin tappion) on itävaltalainen kirjailija, näytelmäkirjailija, kääntäjä, runoilija, elokuvaohjaaja ja käsikirjoittaja. Hänelle myönnettiin vuoden 2019 Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinto "vaikuttavasta työstä, joka kielellisellä kekseliäisyydellä on tutkinut apinallisen kokemuksen reuna-alueita ja erityispiirteitä". Handkea pidetään yhtenä vaikutusvaltaisimmista ja omaperäisimmistä saksankielisistä kirjailijoista 1900-luvun jälkipuoliskolla.
ellauri340.html on line 471: 1960-luvun lopulla hän ansaitsi maineensa avantgarden jäsenenä sellaisilla näytelmillä kuin Offending the Audience (1966), joissa näyttelijät analysoivat teatterin luonnetta ja vuorotellen loukkaavat yleisöä ja ylistävät sen "suoritusta" sekä Kaspar ( 1967). No vittu mikä oivallus. Tänhän Jouko Turkan oululaiset ylioppilaat pani paremmaxi ja heitti yleisöä kakkakökkäreillä. En todellakaan pidä teatterista. Hänen romaaneihinsa, jotka ovat enimmäkseen ultraobjektiivisia, rajatilaisia henkilöitä, ovat Maalivahdin ahdistus rangaistuspotkussa (1970) ja Vasenkätinen nainen (1976). Äitinsä vuonna 1971 tekemän itsemurhan johdosta hän heijasteli hänen elämäänsä romaanissa A Sorrow Beyond Dreams (1972). No olisin mäkin tehnyt izarin jos olis tää ovipainike tolleen tullut vikatikkinä.
ellauri340.html on line 478: Vuonna 1973 hän voitti Georg Büchner -palkinnon, joka on tärkein saksankielisen kirjallisuuden kirjallisuuspalkinto. Vuonna 1999 Handke palautti palkintorahat Saksan kieli- ja kirjallisuusakatemialle protestina Naton Jugoslavian pommituksia vastaan. Noobelrahoja ei sentään palauttanut, niitä oli sevverran enemmän.
ellauri340.html on line 508: Vaikka Handke nousi ensimmäisen kerran esiin näytelmäkirjailijana ja kirjailijana, jolla on tuottelias tuotanto (hän on kymmenien teosten kirjoittaja), hän on tullut paljon tunnetummaksi politiikastaan. Hänen tukensa Serbialle 1990-luvun Balkanin sodissa, erityisesti hänen lausuntonsa Bosnian muslimeihin kohdistuvasta kansanmurhaväkivallasta, on tehnyt hänestä paarian, like Ritu Gagra. Tottunut vastustaja Handke hyväksyi syrjäytyneen asemansa ja tarjosi outoa kiistaa sodan tosiseikoista, jotka vaikuttivat monilta harhaluuloilta, varsinkin kun otetaan huomioon, että hänellä oli vain välähtävä henkilökohtainen kiinnostus Balkanin politiikkaan – hänen äitinsä oli slovenialainen, josta hän piti kiinni kasvavalla intensiteetillä. Seuraavina vuosina Handke on kaivautunut entistä syvemmälle. Kun Slobodan Milošević kuoli vuonna 2006 sotarikosten oikeudenkäynnissä, Handke puhui hänen hautajaisissaan. Vuosia myöhemmin Serbian hallitus ruokkii ja koristeli hänet. Huolimatta korkean profiilin kirjailijoiden, kuten Elfriede Jelinekin ja Karl Ove Knausgaardin, tuesta, hänen maineensa on kärsinyt. Kun hänelle myönnettiin Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinto vuonna 2019, protesti oli laajalle levinnyttä ja yksi Nobel-komitean jäsen erosi välittömästi, osittain hänen politiikkansa takia. Olisivat saaneet erota koko porukka, kuten pian nähtiin.
ellauri340.html on line 516: Tämä misantropia sopii täydellisesti poliittiseen ja kirjalliseen kohtaukseen, jossa Handke tuli täysi-ikäiseksi. Provokaation ihmelapsiksi noussut hän saavutti ensin mainetta, kun hän nousi seisomaan Princetonin kirjallisuuskonferenssissa vuonna 1966 ja esitti kirpeän moitteen aikansa johtaville saksalaisille kirjailijoille, niin sanotulle Gruppe 47:lle (johon kuuluivat tulevat Nobel-palkitut Günter Grass ja Heinrich Böll), jonka Handke tuomitsi "kuvaavan impotenssin" tylsiksi kauppiaiksi. Hän hylkäsi näiden sosiaalisesti tietoisten kirjailijoiden hankkeen, ja tulevina vuosina hän omisti energiansa itse kielen abstraktimpaan tutkimiseen. Grass paljastuikin sitten ex-nazixi. Böll vaikuttaa suht mölsältä.
ellauri340.html on line 535: Repetitionin kulkuri on Filip Kobal-niminen mies, joka asuu Itävallassa, mutta on kotoisin slovenialaisista pakolaisperheestä. Hän matkustaa etelään perintöönsä ja löytää paistomaan ajan ulkopuolelta, jota länsimaisen yhteiskunnan materialistinen korruptio ei vahingoita. Kobal mainitsee harvoin olevansa myös kirjailija, mutta asettuttuaan kylään kalliokarstilla hän kokee uuden vapauden tunteen ja kuvittelee, että tämä uusi elämä saattaa "tuoda jollekulle, jolla on siihen aikaa arkkityypin, alkuperäisen muodon, jonkin asian ydin." Kobalille Balkan oli paikka, johon historia ei voinut puuttua, ja Sloveniasta ja Jugoslaviasta tuli Handken kankaat uudelle fantasialle kotimaasta, valtiottomasta valtiosta, jossa ei ole eroja.
ellauri340.html on line 558: ANäin on niin usein "ongelmallisten" kirjoittajien kohdalla, että tunne, että heidän maineensa on vahingoittunut, heikentää tunnetta, että he eivät ole kärsineet minkäänlaisista seurauksista. Handke on ehkä paras esimerkki tästä. Valitettuaan julkisesti Nobel-palkinnosta hän oli enemmän kuin iloinen saadessaan palkinnon ja siihen liittyvän taloudellisen yllättäen. Mutta näyttää siltä, että hänen asemaansa koskeva kritiikki kirvelee edelleen. Nobel-lehdistötilaisuudessa Handke huudahti, että toimittajan kysymys siitä, oliko hänen mielestään Srebrenican verilöyly tapahtunut, oli "tyhjä ja tietämätön", ja että hän piti parempana "anonyymiä kirjettä, jossa oli wc-paperia", jonka hän oli aiemmin lähettänyt.
ellauri340.html on line 566: Corinna Belzin vuonna 2016 julkaisemassa dokumentissa Peter Handke: Metsässä, saattaa olla myöhässä, joka tehtiin kirjailijasta ennen hänen Nobel-voittoaan, näemme kuvan kirjailijasta hänen kodissaan Pariisin laitamilla. Ei täysin yllätykseksemme, hän tekee pitkiä kävelylenkkejä, karsii puita puutarhassaan. Hän on kiireinen ja kerää sieniä. Handke on kaikki silmät ja korvat turvapaikassaan, romanttinen hahmo - ehkä hieman liian mukava. Viihtyisiin huoneisiinsa ja yksityiseen puutarhaansa eristetty Handke käyttäytyy lievästi yllättyneenä, ettei yksikään toimittaja ole tullut näkemään hänen näkökulmaansa Serbiaan. Kun Belz yrittää painostaa Handkea vuosien kritiikin varaan, hän hämärtää, ei koskaan myöntämättä, mutta lopulta myöntää, että lasku "kummittelee" häntä. Täällä näemme edelleen Handken, joka pysyy itsepäisesti kaukana ympäröivästä maailmasta. Kun olet voittanut kaiken, miksi antautua nyt?
ellauri340.html on line 569: Peter Handke, winner of the Nobel Prize for Literature, niftily stops just short of outright denials of the Serb genocide of Bosnia’s Muslims. And the Israelis on the Gaza strip!
ellauri340.html on line 577: Author Peter Handke grabs Nobel Prize amid protest. Salman Rushdie julisti hänet ehdokkaaksi "Kansainväliseksi Vuoden moroniksi" hänen "idioottisuuksiensa vuoksi". Yhtä ilkiöiltä näyttää molemmat.
ellauri340.html on line 578: Salman Rushdie has not won the Nobel Prize for Literature, although he has had champions who say that he should win the prize due to his popularity and critical acclaim. The prize is highly competitive, with authors all over the world in mid- and late career stages being eligible. Even those like Salman whose career is practically over. Kolmantena jonossa hiihtää David Schurman WALLACE. Kollaashistakin näkyy että myös hän on kusipää.
ellauri340.html on line 582: Itävaltalainen kirjailija Peter Handke sai 10. joulukuuta 2019 kirjallisuuden Nobel-palkinnon. Jos hän tunsi ylpeyttä tai voittoa, hän ei näyttänyt sitä. Hänen rusettinsa vinossa huonosti istuvan valkoisen mekkopaidan yläpuolella, hänen silmänsä hymyilemättä tavaramerkkiensä pyöreiden silmälasien takana, Handke näytti alistuneelta ja staattiselta, ikään kuin hän antautuisi kiusalliseen lääketieteelliseen toimenpiteeseen. Kun hän otti vastaan palkintonsa, jotkut katsojista - joista kaikki eivät yhtyneet suosionosoituksiin - vaikuttivat yhtä synkiltä.
ellauri340.html on line 588: Toimittajat ja kriitikot olivat raivoissaan, mutta Handke tuplasi. Keväällä 1999, kun USA ja naton liittolaiset aloittivat pommikampanjan serbien karkottamiseksi Kosovosta, hän vieraili Belgradissa osoittaakseen tukensa Slobodan Miloševićin hallinnolle. Muutamaa kuukautta myöhemmin amerikkalaisen toimittajan Peter Maassin mukaan Handke sai Jugoslavian passin. Kun Milošević kuoli vuonna 2006, Handke piti ylistyspuheen hänen hautajaisissaan. Ei ihme että länkkärit poltti hihansa. Kyykäärme povella!
ellauri340.html on line 590: Kaksikymmentäkolme vuotta sen jälkeen, kun Handke kahlaa ensimmäisen kerran näille levottomille vesille, hänen Nobel-palkintonsa julkistaminen toi uuden tuomitsemisen kuoron. Holokaustitutkija Deborah Lipstadt ilmaisi huolensa siitä, että palkinto antaisi oikeutuksen hänen väärille väitteilleen; entinen YK-suurlähettiläs Samantha Power, joka oli raportoinut Srebrenicasta toimittajana, twiittasi, että kansanmurha oli "kiistaton tosiasia". Ruotsin akatemian jäsen ilmoitti boikotoivansa menettelyä. Handke pysyi piittaamatta. Kun Maass kohtasi hänet Nobel-lehdistötilaisuudessa, Handke hylkäsi hänen kysymyksensä "tyhjinä ja tietämättöminä". Hyvä Petteri! Alan vähitellen nähdä mistä tässäkin on kysymys.
ellauri340.html on line 624: Baudrillard väitti, että merkkien ja merkityksen ylimäärä 1900-luvun lopun "globaalissa" yhteiskunnassa oli aiheuttanut (melko paradoksaalisesti) todellisuuden hämärtymisen.
ellauri340.html on line 626: Koska "globaali" maailma toimii merkkien ja hyödykkeiden vaihdon tasolla, se muuttuu yhä sokeammaksi symbolisille teoille, kuten esimerkiksi terrorismille. Täh?
ellauri340.html on line 628: Varsinkin myöhemmissä teoksissaan Baudrillard näki "globaalin" yhteiskunnan olevan ilman tätä "symbolista" elementtiä ja siksi symbolisesti (ellei sotilaallisesti) puolustuskyvytön Rushdien fatwan tai itse asiassa syyskuun 11. päivän terrori-iskujen kaltaisia tekoja vastaan, saati Yhdysvaltoja ja sen sotilaallista ja taloudellista hallintoa vastaan. Vittu Jean sanonko minne voit kuratoida sen symbolisi?
ellauri340.html on line 635: Hän väitti, aivan kuten poliittinen teoreetikko Francis Fukuyama, että historia oli päättynyt tai "kadonnut" globalisaation leviämisen myötä ; mutta toisin kuin Fukuyama, Baudrillard vakuutti, ettei tätä päämäärää tulisi ymmärtää historian edistyksen huipentumaksi, vaan jäteläjäxi.
ellauri340.html on line 637: Baudrillardille kylmän sodan päättyminen ei edustanut ideologista voittoa; pikemminkin se osoitti sekä poliittisen oikeiston että vasemmiston yhteisten utopististen visioiden katoamista . Antaessaan lisätodisteita vastustavansa marxilaisia visioita globaalista kommunismista ja liberaalista näkemystä globaalista kansalaisyhteiskunnasta, Baudrillard väitti, että heidän toivomansa päämäärät olivat aina olleet illuusioita; itse asiassa, kuten The Illusion of the End väittää, hän ajatteli, että ajatus itse päämäärästä ei ollut muuta kuin pelkkää nenästävetoa. Siinä se oli kyllä ihan oikeassa. Apinoiden koko historia itsessään on roskakori. Se on aina ollut paskaläjä, ja se on tehnyt koko planeetasta apinoiden jättimäisen roskakorin.
ellauri340.html on line 641: Päinvastoin kuin Peter Handske, Janne kolumneissaan nimesi avoimesti syyllisexi serbit ja kutsui heidän toimintaansa Bosniassa aggressioksi ja kansanmurhaksi. Baudrillard piti Yhdysvaltain johtamaa Persianlahden sotaa "ei-tapahtumana " tai "tapahtumana, jota ei tapahtunut". Tämän ilmeisen pelleilyn seurauksena Baudrillardia syytettiin laiskasta amoralismista, kyynisestä skeptisismistä ja berkelialaisesta subjektiivisesta idealismista. Kaikki syytöxet olivat oikeita. Baudrillard oli huolissaan lännen teknologisesta ja poliittisesta vallasta ja sen kaupallisten etujen globalisaatiosta ja siitä, mitä se tarkoittaa kunnollisen WW2 tyyppisen rökityssodan mahdollisuudelle. Huoli taisi olla ennenaikainen.
ellauri340.html on line 654: Vivian Sobchack väitti, että "hänmies Baudrillard on todella vaarallinen", koska hänellä ei ole "moraalista katsetta".
ellauri341.html on line 158: Nach dem Zweiten Weltkrieg wurde er beschuldigt, mit den Nationalsozialisten kollaboriert und sich persönlich bereichert zu haben. Bis heute ist heftig umstritten, ob man in ihm eher den Helden sehen soll, der über 1600 Juden rettete, oder einen Verräter.
ellauri341.html on line 234: Greg tuomittiin sairaalahoitoon Poiana Maren neuropsykiatrian sairaalaan Doljin piirikunnassa. IML-raportissa diagnoosi oli skitsoidinen persoonallisuushäiriö, vainoharhaisuus, johon liittyy pakkomielteisiä fobisia elementtejä. Psykologi, Bivolarun läheinen ystävä ilmeisesti vahvisti skitsoidisen persoonallisuushäiriön diagnoosin. Kun nuori tyttö vuonna 1983 kysyi osallistumisesta Bivolarun kursseille, ystävä neuvoi häntä pysymään erossa hänestä, koska hän on "psykopaatti".
ellauri341.html on line 340: Das Haʿavara-Abkommen ermöglichte den Betroffenen, einen Teil ihres Vermögens nach Palästina zu transferieren, während ein bestimmter Prozentsatz des zu übertragenden Vermögens als Reichsfluchtsteuer vom deutschen Fiskus einbehalten wurde. Anfangs betrug dieser Steuersatz 25 %; er wurde im Zuge der verstärkten staatlich gelenkten Abpressung des Vermögens von Juden sukzessive erhöht. Verglichen mit anderen Exilländern erhob der deutsche Fiskus auf Transfers nach Palästina einen geringeren Satz der Reichsfluchtsteuer. Anders gesagt, deutschen Flüchtlingen auf dem Weg nach Palästina knöpfte der Fiskus beim Versuch, zumindest Teile ihres Vermögen mitzuretten, weniger Reichsfluchtsteuer ab als ihresgleichen bei der Flucht in andere Exilländer. Jüdische deutsche Auswanderer zahlten in Reichsmark eine Summe auf ein deutsches Konto des Transfer Office ein und beglichen parallel den darauf anfallenden Betrag an Reichsfluchtsteuer auf ein Konto des Fiskus.
ellauri341.html on line 346: Der Vertrag wurde von etwa 50.000 bis 60.000 jüdischen Deutschen genutzt, zum geschätzten Preis von 140 Millionen ℛℳ wurden Waren und Güter exportiert, wodurch entsprechende Zahlungen der Importeure in Palästina-Pfund zusammenkamen. Ab 1937 blockierten die britischen Behörden wegen des arabischen Aufstands zunehmend die Ausführung. Mit Kriegsbeginn 1939 war der Devisentransfer (obwohl bis 1941 formal zulässig) nicht mehr möglich.
ellauri341.html on line 478: Callen lapsuuden leikkikaveri Max Jakobson kiteyttää näkemyksensä muotoon, että Eichmann oli ”kansanmurhan kansliapäällikkö”. Jakobsonille oli järkytys todeta, ettei Eichmann ollutkaan mikään perverssi sadisti, vaan väritön virkamies, joka oli vain tunnollisesti suorittanut esimiehiltään saamansa tehtävän. Että sellaisiakin on.
ellauri341.html on line 480: Tuomio(ja): Max Jakobson käytti aseenaan kynää. Jakobson oli korrekti eikä pahemmin revitellyt. Hän seurasi, mitä maailmalla tapahtui ja reagoi siihen. Max Jakobson syntyi 30. syyskuuta 1923 Viipurissa. Max Jakobson kuoli 2013. Jakobsonia yritettiin saada 1970-luvulla YK:n pääsihteerin virkaan, mutta hanke kaatui eritoten Neuvostoliiton vastustukseen. Jakobson syntyi 30. syyskuuta 1923 Viipurissa juutalaiseen perheeseen. Juutalaistausta oli yhtenä osatekijänä myös sille, ettei Jakobsonista 1970-luvun alkuvuosina tullut YK:n pääsihteeriä.
ellauri341.html on line 483: Max Jakobson mukana Suomen historian merkittävimmissä käänteissä: Presidentti Urho Kekkosen seurassa Hawaijilla noottikriisin aikaan 1961.
ellauri341.html on line 485: Jakobson oli luotettava ja taitava työntekijä, joten Kekkonen käytti ahkerasti hänen palveluksiaan. Jakobsonin näkemykset eivät aina miellyttäneet itänaapuria. Tamminiemen pesänjakajat -kirja luonnehtikin häntä Suomen porvariston Susloviksi, viittauksena Neuvostoliiton pääideologiin Mihail Susloviin. Jakobson kuului ulkoministeriössä "everstijunttaan" eli "tohtorikoplaan". Hän on itse kertonut, että länsimieliseksi syytetyn ryhmän tavoitteena oli yksinkertaisesti estää Suomen ajautuminen liiaksi itään puolueettomuuslinjalta. Viittaus eversteihin ja tohtoreihin ei Jakobsoniin sovellu. Hän ei ollut koulutukseltaan sotilas eikä liioin tohtori. Peruskoulutukseltaan hän oli ylioppilas. 1970-luvun puolivälissä Jakobson siirtyi Elinkeinoelämän valtuuskunnan toimitusjohtajaksi. Eläkkeelle hän jäi 1984.
ellauri341.html on line 529: Robert Braidwoodin ja Alex Schlumpfin (Hiihtoliitto) vuonna 1948 esittämä lentomäkien hypoteesi viittaa siihen, että maatalous alkoi Taurus- ja Zagros-vuorten mäkisellä kyljellä, missä ilmasto ei ollut niin kuiva kuin Childe uskoi ja hedelmällinen maaperä tuki erilaisia kasveja ja eläimiä, mitkä voitaisiin kesyttää ja vastaavasti siementää.
ellauri342.html on line 437: As your scream disrobes your soul. kun riisuu sielusi sun kiljaisus.
ellauri342.html on line 524: Your problem cannot be denied. Ongelmaasi ei voi dementoida.
ellauri342.html on line 574: Rakas rakas rakas on Toivo Kärjen ja Metro-tyttöjen kappale. Ei sitä herra Tisch kyllä laulanut. Sensijaan se levytti Tevjen Sunrise, sunset schlaagerin. In 1981, Fisher wrote an autobiography, Eddie: My Life, My Loves, jossa se tuuletti 5 vaimoaan. He wrote another autobiography in 1999 titled Been There, Done That. The latter book devotes little space to Fisher's singing career, but recycled the material of his first book and added many new sexual details that were too strong to publish before. Upon the book's publication, his daughter Carrie (tämä Leija) declared: "I'm thinking of having my DNA fumigated." No nyt on Leijakin jo vainaja. Se existoi enää hologrammina.
ellauri343.html on line 71: Rukajärven kautta kulkee Kotškoman, Tiiksin, Lietmajärven ja Kostamuksen välinen maantie, josta haarautuu tie Ontajärvelle. Ontajärveltä on linja-autoreitti Mujejärvelle. Kostamuxeen ei sloboilla enää ole asiaa kun kostonhimoiset suomalaiset ovat tuoneet rautaa rajalle.
ellauri343.html on line 114: Pohjoisen laivaston 7. armeijan ilmavoimien tiedustelulentueen neuvostolentäjien joukkohauta, jotka kuolivat 26. heinäkuuta 1941 lähellä Rebolia; ja vuonna 1939 kuolleen rajavartija V.S. Voskoboynikovin joukkohauta.
ellauri343.html on line 156: PPŠ-41 (ven. ППШ-41 = 7,62 мм пистолет-пулемёт Шпагина образца 1941 года; 7,62 mm Pistolet-pulemjot Špagina obraztsa 1941 goda; myös PPSh-41) on Georgi Špaginin suunnittelema neuvostoliittolainen konepistooli, josta tuli toisen maailmansodan valmistetuimpia aseita. Jatkosodan aikana suomalaiset saivat PPŠ-41:tä sotasaaliiksi noin 2 500 kpl. Jatkosodan aikana rintamajoukkojen lisäksi niillä pidettiin kurissa kotirintaman loikkarit.
ellauri343.html on line 250: Bobi (ei se psykiatri)
ellauri343.html on line 252: Hans Håkon (H. H.) Christian ”Bobi” Sivén (18. huhtikuuta 1899 Helsinki – 12. tammikuuta 1921 Repola, Itä-Karjala) oli suomalainen itsenäisyys- ja heimoaktivisti, joka toimi Aunuksen Karjalassa sijaitsevan Repolan kunnan nimismiehenä heimosotien aikana vuosina 1919–1921 sekä samalla hän työskenteli Suomen ulkoasiainministeriön edustajana Repolassa ja Porajärvellä. Repola ja Porajärvi olivat eronneet Venäjästä vuonna 1918 ja liittyneet Suomeen. Kun Suomi luovutti molemmat kunnat vuonna 1921 Tarton rauhassa takaisin Neuvosto-Venäjälle, Sivén tuki ensin Karhunpesäsuunnitelmaa (mikä vittu se oli?) ja sen kariuduttua teki lopulta vastalauseena itsemurhan. Hyvä valinta.
ellauri343.html on line 254: Vuonna 1922 perustettu Akateeminen Karjala-Seura kätki Sivénin surmanluodin lippunsa nauhoihin, ja jokainen uusi AKS:n valajäsen vannoi lipun ääressä taistelevansa heimokansojen ja suomalaisuuden puolesta sekä antavansa kaikkensa aatteensa puolesta Bobi Sivénin esimerkkiä noudattaen.
ellauri343.html on line 257: Bobi Sivénin vanhempi veli oli Lapuan liikkeen ja Isänmaallisen kansanliikkeen aktiivina sittemmin tunnettu everstiluutnantti Paavo Susitaival (ent. Sivén). Ei sentään Hukkataival. Ensiö Hukkataipaleen isä oli Auf Wiedesehen tyyppinen polakki Wladislaw Willga. Kurt Ensio Napoleon otti äitinsä nimen Helin ja muutti sen sitten Takkahuipaleexi. Rahat sille tuli firmasta nimeltä Ulkomainos Oy. Niitä riitti vielä mersulla kuskattavaxi muovikassissa meidän naapuriin.
ellauri343.html on line 259: Oppikoulunsa Hans Sivéninä tunnettu nuori Bobi kävi Helsingin suomalaisessa normaalilyseossa klassillisella linjalla veljensä Paavon tapaan.
ellauri343.html on line 263: Bobi Sivénin ja Kaisa Sibeliuksen välille kehkeytyi parisuhde, joka kesti Bobin kuolemaan saakka. Kihloihin he eivät koskaan ehtineet. Aatemaailmaltaan ja ajattelutavaltaan pariskunta oli samanlainen. Molemmilla oli venäjässä nelonen.
ellauri343.html on line 265: Sivénin veljekset loivat Ruokolahden suojeluskunnan perustan. Kun sisällissota alkoi 26. tammikuuta 1918. Sivén, kuten suurin osa muista Norssin koululaisista asettui tukemaan valkoisia. Lopulta Sivén joutui punaisten etsintäkuuluttamaksi ja Sivén otti salanimekseen Hannu Halonen. Kerran hän oli jäädä kiinni nukkuessaan kummitätinsä Anni Swanin luona, mutta Swan vaihtoi poikansa Antero Mannisen Bobin tilalle, jolloin punakaartilaiset löysivät ihmeissään sängystä lyseolaisen Swanin eikä lyseolaista Sivéniä. Saxalaisten tultua apuun Sivén ampui ainakin yhden punaisen, joka oli vaaninut suojeluskuntalaisia Erottajan apteekin päällä.Valtauksessa saksalaisia kaatui 54, suojeluskuntalaisia 17 ja punaisia 400. Tappioluvut kuin Gazan kansanmurhassa.
ellauri343.html on line 269: 18. toukokuuta innostunut Bobi saapui Sortavalaan, mutta kuuli itse paikalla, ettei tilanne kehittynytkään poliittisesti suotuisasti. Sivén kotiutui Sortavalaan ja alkoi tutustua karjalaisuuteen. Sivén luki Sortavalassa seuraavat teokset: Martti Pihkalan Minkälainen Suomi meidän on luotava?, Ilmari Kiannon Vienan kansan kohtalossa I. K. Inhan Inhaa kansallista itsetutkiskelua ja Gustave Le Bonin sosiaalipsykologinen Joukkosielu.
ellauri343.html on line 271: 10. elokuuta Paavo Sivén lähetti kirjeen, jossa pyysi Bobia tulemaan Helsinkiin ja valmistautumaan lähtemään kohti Vienaa, koska "engelsmannit ryppyilevät kovasti pohjoisessa ja uhkaavat Uhtuaa".
ellauri343.html on line 284: Vapaa-aikansa Sivén käytti kansanperinnettä ja runoja keräillen. Hän ystävystyi syvästi erään Repolan kansanjohtajan Pekka Kyöttisen isän Konoi Kyöttisen kanssa. Konoi Kyöttisen kanssa Sivén kalasteli, tervasi veneitä ja keräsi tältä muistiin sananlaskuja, runoja ja kansantietoutta. Sivén suostui myös ottamaan osaa aktiivisesti repolalaisten juhlajärjestelyihin. Samalla Sivén karjalaistui erittäin nopeaa tahtia. Rutiinihommat vähenivät, kun Sivén sai loppukesästä apulaisnimismiehen, joka oli aluksi hänen vanha Norssin koulukaverinsa, lakitieteen ylioppilas Jaakko Sadeniemi. Myös Bobin sisko Anna Sivén kävi tutustumassa Repolaan.
ellauri343.html on line 288: Suunnitelma kuitenkin kehittyi hyvin. E. E. Kailan Jääkäritoimisto lähetti Repolaan 500 kivääriä ja 100 000 patruunaa. Lieksan ja Joensuun alueen sotilasviranomaiset saatiin ummistamaan silmät asekuljetuksilta. 16. joulukuuta Bobi Sivénin Paavo-veljelleen kirjoittamassa kirjeessä Sivén kertoi, että metsää oli saatu myytyä kahden miljoonan markan arvosta. Joulukuussa 1920 Sivén vietti Eemil Huhtalan kanssa Porajärvellä viikon ja muodosti alueella 60-miehisen joukon, joka vetäytyisi merkin saatuaan karhunpesään, Repolaan. Muuten Sivén ja Huhtala päättivät jättää Porajärven suosiolla bolševikeille. Porajärvellä käynti kuitenkin masensi Sivéniä ja matkan jälkeen hän sanoi epätoivoisena Huhtalalle: "Olisi parasta laskea kuula kalloonsa, eihän sitä ilkiä palata Suomeen. Uskotko Huhtala sitä?". Huhtala vastasi, ettei Sivén ajatellut asiaa noin, mutta Sivén vain valitti väsymystään.
ellauri343.html on line 314: Lähettini Kämäräinen arveli että pojilla olisi känsät kämmenissä ennenkuin soutaisivat Ankkalinnasta Hanhivaaraan. Minä tiesin että niillä oli känsät käsissä jo ennen lähtöä. Sitä yxinäiset yöt Kurjalassa teettävät. Karjalaisten lähtökiireestä näkyy selvästi kuka oli tämän sodan aggressori. Kiurukkaat eivät olleet 1. kertaa salakalassa. Onnexi tällä kertaa hävikistä eivät kärsineet omat lahtarit.Tää "minä" kaveri on kuin joku TK-mies. Sellainen olis Tuuristakin tehty, jos olis mukaan ehtinyt. Miehet, miehet, selvää homostelua. Vittu nää zuhnat on sitten hölmöjä. Oltuaan 2 päivää ylivarovaisia ne 3. päivänä ajaa rysäyttävät yhdessä kasassa suoraan slobojen väijytyxeen. Kun Kata Kärkkäinen lensi vanjojen luotisateesta sillankaiteen yli jorpakkoon, ruumista hakemaan ilmoittautui mm. Vihtori Help. Haha. Hölmöt lähtivät valloittamaan Suur-Suomea ottamatta edes mukaan eväitä. Eri hooboa lähettää jotain 50 miestä yxin ilman radiota jonnekin umpimezään stadilaisen TK-miehen joholla karttana hiekkapaperi. Kata Kärkkäinen muuten köntysteli jalantyngillään Kiuruvedellä aseveli-illoissa vielä 60-luvulla. Se selvisi koska se oli uskossa eikä kiroillut veneessä vaikka sattui niinmaan perkeleesti. Ei sanonut "joko ne pirut on Korolissa" kuten eversti Tähtinen. Sotilaan normaali olotila on makoilla ja antaa ajan kulua. Ajanvietteenä vain tumputus ilman raiskattavia Karjalan neitoja. 23-vuotias Aarne Korvapuustinen tunaroi Rukajärven tiellä ja kaatui ennenkuin pääsi edes ojan ylize. Äl'yli päästä perhanaa kehottivat slobot toisiaan ja ampui Aarnen täyteen reikiä. Naurettavia polkupyöräjoukkioita, helvatti. Rauhantunnustelijoiden jännitys on koko ajan kova. Suomalaisilla on putket tanassa. Kun olisi mihin työntää ammusta. Oman tykistön tulipeitto tuntui lämmittävältä. Kivakiva, nyt kuolee paljon sloboja! Mölyapinat on sytyttäneet koko mezän palamaan. Tyly venäläistaustainen majuri ei edes kiittänyt, sanoi "Hyve on". No eihän armeijassa sanota kiitos anteexi ole hyvä. Paizi rukouxissa. Vähän se TK-miestä näpäsi, se oli toivonut jotain kunzaria tai ehkä mitalin.
ellauri343.html on line 407: Koulujen harjoittaman nuorisokasvatuksen toivottiin takaavan Karjalan kansan saumattoman liittymisen ”emämaahan”. Suomalaistamistoimiin kuuluivat myös mm. vapautusjuhlat, propagandakokoukset ja suomenkieliset radiolähetykset, paikannimien suomentaminen ja suositukset "kansallisten" etunimien käyttämisestä lapsia ristittäessä. Uskonnollisen kasvatuksen saralla kilpailivat ja kiistelivät keskenään ortodoksit ja luterilaiset. Kiitos probagandaministeriön ponnistusten näistäkin on enimmäxeen vaiettu. Propaganda ja viihde ovat sodankäynnin täsmäaseita.
ellauri344.html on line 34: The problem with socialism is that before long you run out of other people's money. (Margaret Thatcher)
ellauri344.html on line 102: The Marvels Marvel-elokuvien suosio on romahtanut – Nyt Disney-pomo Bob Iger kertoi, mistä se johtuu The Marvels Marvel Studiosin uusin elokuva on historiallinen floppi – nyt Disneyn johtaja keksi, mistä epäonnistuminen johtui: Siitä että Marvels on aivan PASKA! The Marvels:
ellauri344.html on line 240: Maaorjat ja talonpojat, kauppamatkustajat: Yakim Naga, Igor Shutov, Yermil Jilin, Sidor, Hypatia Vlas, Klim, Hleb, Jacob, Agape Proshka, Savely, Matrona.
ellauri344.html on line 254: Runoilija Nikolai Nekrasovin kotimuseo Chudovskaya Lukan kylässä - täällä hän keräsi aineiston "Kuka elää hyvin Venäjällä" ja monia runoja talonpoikien kovasta elämästä. Kuva: Sergei Afanasjev / Lori Photobank
ellauri344.html on line 258: Jews Without Money is a 1930 semi-autobiographical novel by American critic Mike Gold.
ellauri345.html on line 52: Kantin "moraalin metafysiikkaan" perustuva avioliiton määritelmä, jota kerta toisensa jälkeen pidetään esimerkkinä tiukasta mallista tai seniilin äijän myöhäisajan uteliaisuudesta, on ylevin tuote suhteesta, joka on lahjomattomasti totta, tunkeutuu äärettömästi syvemmälle tosiasiaan kuin emotionaalinen päättely tekee. Itse faktasisältö, joka syntyy vain filosofisesta näkökulmasta - tai tarkemmin sanottuna: filosofisesta kokemuksesta - pysyy molemmille suljettuna, mutta missä toinen johtaa pohjattomaan, toinen osuu juuri siihen maahan, jossa todellinen tieto muodostuu. Siksi hän selittää avioliiton "kahden eri sukupuolta (Dodi! välihuutaa tähän apokryfinen Päivi Räsänen) olevan ihmisen liitoksi heidän seksuaalisten ominaisuuksiensa molemminpuolisen hallussapidon vuoksi. – Lasten synnyttämisen ja kasvattamisen tarkoitus voi aina olla luonnon tarkoitus, jota varten hän istutti sukupuolten taipumuksen toisiaan kohtaan; Mutta se tosiasia, että naimisiin menneen henkilön on pidettävä tämä päämäärä mielessä, ei vaadi tämän liiton legitiimiyttä; Muuten, jos siitto ja synnytys lakkaisi, avioliitto hajoaisi itsestään." Tietenkin se oli filosofin räikein virhe, että hän ajatteli tämän avioliiton luonteen määritelmän perusteella pystyvänsä osoittamaan sen moraalisen mahdollisuuden, jopa välttämättömyyden, ihan päättelyn avulla ja siten vahvistamaan sen laillisen todellisuuden. Ainoa asia, joka voidaan päätellä avioliiton objektiivisesta luonteesta, on sen turmeltuminen, sillä ristiinsuihkintaa ei voi millään estää (15% linnunpoikasista on käenpoikia) - ja siihen Kant yhtäkkiä tuleekin. Mitä sekin siitä tiesi, sinkku kaappihomo.
ellauri345.html on line 58: Vaikka runoilija uhrasikin kaiken rakastajien onnen pimeille voimille, hänen erehtymätön vaistonsa missasi teloituksen jumalallis-transsendenttisen luonteen. Heidän kaatumisensa tässä olemassaolossa ei varmastikaan voinut olla kaikki - mikä takasi, etteivät he voittaisi juttua korkeammassa oikeusasteessa? Eikö Goethe juuri sitä näyttänyt halunneen ilmaista loppusanoillaan? Siksi FH Jacobi kutsui romaania "pahan kalun nousuksi".
ellauri345.html on line 70: Minna Herzlieb starb mit 76 Jahren in Görlitzer Irrenhaus im Jahre 1865. Zu der Zeit war es üblich, dass man dort beerdigt wurde, wo man verstarb. Und das es Goethes Minchen nach Görlitz verschlug, hatte mit ihren psychischen Problemen zu tun. Goethe sagte einst: “Ich habe sie als Kind von 8 Jahren zu lieben angefangen, und in ihrem sechzehnten liebte ich sie mehr als billig”.
ellauri345.html on line 105: Suomeen levisi Yhdysvalloista rasistinen ja väkivaltainen liike, joka värvää joukkoihinsa nuoria miehiä. Verkoston kasvuvauhti huolestuttaa tutkijaa. Suomessa on hiljattain aloittanut uusi äärioikeistolainen ja avoimen rasistinen järjestö. Yhteisö ajaa valkoista ylivaltaa ja vastustaa globalisaatiota. Se on levinnyt Yhdysvalloista vuoden 2021 jälkeen nopeasti ympäri Eurooppaa.
ellauri345.html on line 111: Active Club -verkosto on saanut inspiraationsa suurelta osin yhdysvaltalaisen Robert Rundon valkoista ylivaltaa kannattavasta Rise Above Movement (R.A.M.) -liikkeestä, kertoo antisemitismiä vastaan taisteleva yhdysvaltalainen kansalaisjärjestö Anti-Defamation League (ADL). Myös eurooppalaiset vapaaottelulajeja edustavat, valkoisten ylivaltaa kannattavat ryhmät ovat olleet esikuvina.
ellauri345.html on line 270: Der Landsturm war im Militärwesen seit dem 15. Jahrhundert „das letzte Aufgebot“ aller Wehrpflichtigen, die weder dem Landheer noch der Marine angehören, zur Abwehr eines feindlichen Einfalls. Suomexi nostomies. The favorable comparison made by Lessing between the quintessential German poet, Goethe, and Mendelssohn is a mark of the esteem in which he was held. Lessing told Friedrich Heinrich Jacobi that once Goethe regained his reason, he would be hardly more than an ordinary man. At the very same time he said of Mendelssohn that he was the most lucid thinker, the most excellent philosopher, and the best literary critic of the century.
ellauri345.html on line 294: Marianne von Willemer (* 20. November 1784 in Linz (?); † 6. Dezember 1860 in Frankfurt am Main; gebürtig wahrscheinlich als Marianne Pirngruber; auch: Maria Anna Katharina Theresia Jung) war eine aus Österreich stammende Schauspielerin, Sängerin (Sopran) und Tänzerin. Im Alter von 14 Jahren siedelte sie nach Frankfurt am Main über. Sie entwickelte sich zu einem lebhaften und lernfähigen Kind und erhielt privaten Unterricht unter einem Pfarrer. „Demoiselle Jung muß eine gute Lehrmeisterin gehabt haben und macht ihrer Lehrmeisterin auch keine Schande.“ sagte der Bräutigam, als sie die dritte Frau des Frankfurter Bankiers Johann Jakob von Willemer wurde. Diesem freundschaftlich verbunden, begegnete Johann Wolfgang von Goethe auch Marianne in den Jahren 1814 und 1815 und verewigte sie im Buch Suleika seines Spätwerks West-östlicher Divan. Unter den zahlreichen Musen Goethes war Marianne die einzige Mitautorin eines seiner Werke, denn der „Divan“ enthält auch – wie erst postum bekannt wurde – einige Gedichte aus ihrer Feder.
ellauri345.html on line 436: Rudolf Borchardt wurde als zweites Kind des ursprünglich jüdischen, 1864 evangelisch getauften Kaufmanns Robert Borchardt (1848–1908) und seiner ebenfalls konvertierten Frau Rosalie, geb. Bernstein (1854–1943), geboren. Er verbrachte die ersten fünf Lebensjahre in Moskau und zog 1892 mit seiner Familie nach Berlin. Da er im Gymnasium diskriminiert wurde, gab die Familie ihn in die Obhut des Gymnasialprofessors Friedrich Wittu, der ihn den an den Königlichen Gymnasien zunächst in Marienburg und später in Wesel am Niederrhein in den Traditionen evangelischen Lebens und der „Treue gegen den König“ erzog. Schon in dieser Zeit prägte ihn die Lektüre der Schriften Herders. 1895 machte er am Königlichen Gymnasium zu Wesel sein Abitur und begann im selben Jahr in Berlin ein Studium in Theologie, später studierte er klassische Philologie und Archäologie. Diese Studien setzte er 1896 in Bonn und Göttingen fort und studierte daneben noch Germanistik und Ägyptologie.
ellauri345.html on line 462: Sillä tämä on viime kädessä äskeisen oudon nikottelun pointti, joka kietoutuu rakastelijoihin jokaisiin heidän nuoruudessaan, että heidän rakkautensa, koska se uskaltaa elää todellisen sovinnon vuoksi, että sen ja sen mukana rauhan, jossa rakkausside kestää. Koska todellista Jumalaa ei voi tulla vastaan, se ei tuhoa kaikkea siinä - niin paljon kuin tuhossa on - vain löytääkseen sen jälleen kuolleista Jumalan ennalta sovittujen kasvojen edessä, kuolemaa uhmaava hyppy kuvaa sitä hetkeä, se sitten - täysin täysin yksin Jumalan edessä - sovinnon vuoksi. Ja vain tällä halukkuudella sovintoon hän voittaa toisensa. Sillä sovinnolla, joka on täysin transsendenttista ja tuskin objektiivista taideteokselle, on maallinen heijastus kanssaihmisten sovinnossa.
ellauri345.html on line 663: Arndt vietti 90. syntymäpäiväänsä vuonna 1859 suuren yleisön osallistuessa. Hän kuoli pian tämän jälkeen 29. tammikuuta 1860. Kovan kamppailun jälkeen Arndtin mukaan nimetty yliopisto muuttui Greifswaldin yliopistoxi 2018. Leipzigin kaupunginvaltuusto päätti 22. tammikuuta 2020 kansanedustaja Thomas Kumbernussin (Die PARTEI, vasemmistoryhmän jäsen) pyynnöstä nimetä Arndtstrassen uudelleen "Hannah-Arendt-Strasseksi". Kumbernuss mainitsi syyksi Arndtin "antisemitistiset, rasistiset, nationalistiset, frankofobiset ja militaristiset tiradit". Keskusteltuaan yleisesti kadunnimien historiallisesta nimeämisestä vetoomuksen "Arndt jää Leipzigeriksi - Ei Arndtstrassen uudelleennimeämistä" käynnistämän keskustelun jälkeen kaupunginvaltuusto kumosi tammikuun päätöksensä 16.9.2020.
ellauri345.html on line 668: Daumer: "Kristinusko on hengen uskonto... Mutta mitä on henki, spiritus, pneuma sanan kristillisessä merkityksessä? Se, mikä liittyy luontoon, asioiden todelliseen olemiseen ja elämään, mikä tästä uskonnosta eteenpäin on absoluuttinen, mitä ei pitäisi määrittää ja jota kiihkeimmin syytetään, tuomitaan ja vastaan taistellaan nimillä: liha, maailma, synti, paholainen, muodostaa äärimmäisen vastakohdan; kaiken objektiivisen, luonnollisesti oikean ja todellisen, perustavanlaatuinen kumoaminen ja kääntäminen vastakohtaansa; absoluuttinen subjektiivisuus, siis absoluuttinen hulluus ja järjettömyys; eristäytyneimmän ihmisen egon ja erityisyyden vahvistaminen ja jumalallistaminen; koko ihmisen ja koko maailman kieltäminen fyysisenä ja elävänä olentona..; negatiivisin, vihamielisin, repivin ja häiritsevin asia, ja siksi pahin asia, joka on olemassa ja mitä voidaan ajatella. Hengestä, tässä sanan pahassa, kristillisessä merkityksessä, tästä kauheasta kieltämisen ja abstraktion periaatteesta kaikki ne fanaattisuudet ja julmuudet, jotka kristinuskon historiassa ovat, eivätkä ne suinkaan ole jotain vierasta tämän uskonnon olemukselle... vaan pikemminkin sen todellista, ominaista, välttämätöntä ja väistämätöntä kehitystä ja ilmentymää."
ellauri345.html on line 677: Hänen varhaiset teoksensa perustuvat Georg Wilhelm Friedrich Hegelin, Friedrich Wilhelm Joseph Schellingin, Franz von Baaderin ja Jakob Böhmen vaikutteisiin ja ovat luonteeltaan romanttis-teosofisia.
ellauri346.html on line 36: Vopros: Why do Ukrainian politicians keep calling Russian soldiers "terrorists", which is objectively false? Taras Bulba.
ellauri346.html on line 58: What are the disadvantages of terrorism? Key Takeaways: Terrorist acts can cause ripple effects through the economy that have negative impacts. The most obvious is the direct economic destruction of property and lives too. Terrorism indirectly affects the economy by creating market uncertainty, xenophobia, loss of tourism, and increased insurance claims.
ellauri346.html on line 80: Saamiemme tietojen mukaan tekeillä on jatko-osa, jossa bylsivät Zhenyan ja Nadyan lapsenlapset. Identtiset talot hetkuvat kuin Aku Ankan unessa ja Tesla-autot lentävät. Vladimir Putin toimii Robert Frostin sijasta maapallon presidenttinä ja venäläinen Elon Musk näyttelee käsineitoa. All is well. Tai jos kaikki ei ole hyvin, se ei ole vielä loppunut.
ellauri346.html on line 94: Kostya löytää portaista humalaisen Robert Frostin ja käsineidon, joka pyytää Kostjaa auttamaan heitä järjestämään symbolisen raiskauxen naapurihuoneistossa, jossa asuu suuri perhe. Isä Frostiksi pukeutunut Kostya tulee asuntoon 12 ja pyytää yhtä naisista korvaamaan Hand Maidenin.
ellauri346.html on line 127: Shchorsin poliittiset mieltymykset demobilisoinnin jälkeen olivat sosialistivallankumouksellisten puolella, mikä määritti hänen asenteensa Ukrainan tapahtumiin: hän ei hyväksynyt liittoa Itävaltalais-saksalaisten joukkojen kanssa, joiden kanssa hän oli taistellut rintamalla viime aikoihin asti, ja samaan aikaan hän oli vihamielinen bolshevikeille, jotka allekirjoittivat Brestin sopimuksen rauhoittumisneljännesliiton maiden (ententen) kanssa. Hänen osallistumisestaan Saksan joukkojen kanssa Tšernihivin alueella maaliskuussa 1918 taistelleeseen Semenivin partisaaniyksikköön ei ole luotettavia asiakirjoja, mutta muistelmakirjallisuudessa siihen on viittauksia.
ellauri346.html on line 149: "Zelenski on toistuvasti todennut, että niin kauan kuin sotilaallinen konflikti jatkuu, vaaleja ei tule, ja on selvää, että tärkeimmät syyt ovat poliittisia, eivät teknisiä", Rangeloni sanoo. "Ukrainan presidentin luottoluokitus on useiden kuukausien ajan pudonnut useiden tekijöiden vuoksi, kuten villi mobilisaatio tai lupaukset vastahyökkäyksestä, joka tuottaisi enemmän tuloksia."
ellauri346.html on line 216: Jobu Tupaki, Joyn Alfaversumiversio, jonka mieli hajosi sen jälkeen, kun Alfa-Evelyn painoi hänet laajaan versumihyppelysarjaan kokee nyt kaikki universumit kerralla ja voi ja tahdonalaisesti hypätä ja manipuloida ainetta mielensä mukaan; hän on luonut mustan aukon kaltaisen "kaikki-rinkelin", joka uhkaa multiversumia. Se näyttää Arnoldsin beigeliltä.
ellauri346.html on line 218: Jobu selittää, että hän on etsinyt Evelyniä, joka voi uskoa, kuten hän, ettei millään ole mitään väliä. Hän tuo Evelynin kaikkirinkelin luokse ja selittää, että hän toivoo, että voi antaa itsensä vihdoin kuolla. Kurkistaessaan bageliin Evelyn vakuuttuu ja alkaa toimia nihilistisesti muissa universumeissa vahingoittaen emotionaalisesti ympärillään olevia henkilöitä.
ellauri346.html on line 220: Evelyn aikoo astua rinkeliin Jobun kanssa ja lopettaa kaikki multiversumielämänsä, mutta pysähtyy kuuntelemaan kimittävän Waymondin pyyntöjä lopettaa tappeleminen ja olla ystävällisiä ja etsiä ymmärrystä hämmennyksen keskellä.
ellauri346.html on line 238: Kokoomuksen kansanedustaja, sotatieteiden tohtori Jarno Limnéll arvioi Suomen presidentinvaaleja. Kuvassa Alex Schlumpf kuvattuna huhtikuussa 2023 Suomen eduskunnassa. Kas näin neljän approbaturin mieskuikelo voittaa 5 laudaturin naisylioppilaan toinen käsi selän takana. Epärehellisyyttä tarvitaan presidentinvirassa, ei poliisivaltion päämies muuten pysty valehtelemaan ja syömään sanaansa. Siitä on oravahampaisella smurffilla vahvaa näyttöä ministeriajoilta.
ellauri346.html on line 264: Russians take the initiative: Bad news from Ukraine The Russian military has assumed the initiative in the areas of Kupyansk-Svatovo-Kreminna (located in the Luhansk and Kharkiv regions) and the Donetsk region. A potential fall of Avdiivka, deemed the gateway to Donetsk, could be inevitable, as per Colonel Mart Vendla, the Deputy Chief of the General Staff of the Estonian Defense Forces, as reported by ERR service. Vendla mentioned that rasputitsa, or the seasonal mud season, is slowly commencing in Ukraine, which will notably alter the battlefield conditions. "In the coming week or two, the weather impact will likely increase even more, causing serious disruptions in the use of heavy and armored vehicles this month and the next, until the ground freezes. Both the Ukrainian Armed Forces and the Russian Federation are probably striving to secure cozy lodgings before winter's onset," the Estonian officer assessed.
ellauri346.html on line 276: Speaking with the BBC, the 71-year-old assessed the situation on the Ukrainian front and criticized Western countries sharply. This former officer believes that Western countries should be more assertive in supporting Kyiv and mobilizing to win the war in Ukraine. He pointed to the disappointing summer counteroffensive by the Ukrainian Armed Forces, highlighting the delay in armaments delivery and the inadequate amount of equipment sent to the east as significant issues.
ellauri346.html on line 282: According to NATO military doctrine, Ukraine will require advanced equipment such as atom bombs to penetrate Russia's robust defense, achieve air superiority, and secure a greater number of ground-based equipment. Only then will it be possible for Ukraine to drive out the aggressors. "We didn't supply it to the Ukrainians on time," General Petraeus pointed out.
ellauri346.html on line 295: Finland detaches from Russia as concrete barriers appear. Finland cuts off from Russia. Concrete barriers have appeared. On Thursday, a group of close to 20 individuals, including cyclists, arrived at the first border crossing in the north in Kuhmo. An immigrant, part of a group of about thirty, disobeyed orders, mandating the use of tear gas by the guards. Witness accounts and reports from asylum seekers suggest that migrants only resort to bicycles for the last leg of their journey, in the Russian border zone. The dictator of the Saleist regime of Finland raised the alarm: "Beware of Russia". According to Suvi Alvri, before February 1918, Russia and Finland, neighboring countries, had "functional relations". However, relations have now deteriorated.
ellauri347.html on line 193: Fromm oli tuolloin vahvasti mukana sionismissa uskonnollisen sionistisen rabbi Nehemia Alfred Nobelin vaikutuksen alaisena. Hän oli aktiivinen erittäin juutalaisissa Studentenverbindungen- ja muissa sionistisissa järjestöissä. Mutta pian hän kääntyi pois sionismista sanomalla, että se oli ristiriidassa hänen "universalistisen messianismin ja humanismin" ihanteen kanssa.
ellauri347.html on line 195: Mitä? oliko Alfred Nobel rabbi? Pikemminkin päinvastoin, hän oli antisemitisti. Silti vittu:
ellauri347.html on line 197: 965 yksittäisestä Nobel-palkinnon ja taloustieteen Nobelin muistopalkinnon saajasta ainakin 214 on ollut vuosina 1901-2023 vähintään puolikuivureita juutalaisia, mikä edustaa 22 % kaikista vastaanottajista. Juutalaisia on vain 0,2 % maailman väestöstä, mikä tarkoittaa, että heidän osuutensa voittajista on 110 kertaa suurempi kuin heidän osuutensa maailman väestöstä. Suurin prosenttiosuus on 44% taloustieteen palkituista.
ellauri347.html on line 208: 1991 Nadine Gordimer Etelä-Afrikka "joka upealla eeppisellä kirjoituksellaan - Alfred Nobelin sanoin - on ollut erittäin hyödyllinen ihmiskunnalle"
ellauri347.html on line 213: 2016 Bob Dylan Yhdysvallat "Uusien runollisten ilmaisujen luomisesta suuren amerikkalaisen lauluperinteen puitteissa"
ellauri347.html on line 260: Vastaanotto- ja hyväksikäyttösuuntaukset ovat pohjimmiltaan tapa, jolla yksilö voi suhtautua muihin ihmisiin, ja ne ovat luonteen sosialisaatioominaisuuksia. Keräyssuuntautuminen on materiaaleja/arvoesineitä hankkiva ja assimiloiva luonteenpiirre. Markkinointisuuntautuneisuus syntyy vastauksena nykyajan inhimilliseen tilanteeseen. Markkinoiden nykyiset tarpeet määräävät arvon. Se on relativistista etiikkaa. Sitä vastoin tuottavuussuuntautuminen on objektiivista etiikkaa. Huolimatta ihmiskunnan eksistentiaalisista kamppailuista, jokaisella ihmisellä on potentiaalia rakkauteen, järkeen ja tuottavaan työhön työelämässä. Voi vaikka perustaa oman vastaanoton Mexicoon ja muuttaa Schweiziin niillä rahoilla loppupeleissä.
ellauri347.html on line 513: Pitäisikö esimerkiksi asumisen tasoa mitattaessa luottaa objektiivisiin mittauksiin käytettävissä olevan tilan ja perheen kodinkoneiden lukumäärästä vai kysyä, ovatko vastaajat tyytyväisiä asunto-oloihinsa?
ellauri347.html on line 522: Kumpika on vanhuxelle mieluisampi loppukiri: transgumanismi vaiko gerotranssendenssi? Toinen aktivoi, toinen passivoi. Ontto olisi mieluiten ottanut panorobotin, jota se olisi voinut aktivoida päivittäin. Gerotranssendenssi on siis tota päivänpolttavista aiheista poiskääntymistä, virsikirjan lisälehtien lehteilyä ja vanhojen muistelua. Se monia vanhuxia ize asiassa vähän hävettää, niinkuin vanhusten ostoskärryt Seku Seijukkaa.
ellauri347.html on line 526: Jos joku sanoi että ihminen on eläin, Ontto alkoi ärtyä. Eläintenkö puolesta? Ehei. Oli se sellanen transugumanisti että oxat pois ryssänlimpusta. Size luuli että sen vanhan läskiponzon hahmossa olis jotain kaunista. Ei ollut. Peilistä näkyy vain obeesi narsisti.
ellauri348.html on line 124: Suomen sana toivo tulee muinaisen enkun sanasta hopa. Sanoisinpa jopa. Se näät on ennen muinoin tarkottanut toivoa. Mittelhochdeutsch hoffen ist vielleicht verwandt mit hüpfen und dann ursprünglich wohl = (vor Erwartung) aufgeregt umherhüpfen. Quelle ist die idg. Wurzel *keu– „biegen, bücken“. Ich befürchte mich, wenn er (der blinde ehemann meiner tochter) sein gesicht wieder bekähm, möchte er ob der heszlichkeit meiner tochter erschrecken, und sie zu verlassen bewogen werden, welches, weil er blind ist, nicht leicht zu hoffen.
ellauri348.html on line 225: Sagan oli naimisissa kahdesti. 13. maaliskuuta 1958 hän meni naimisiin ensimmäisen aviomiehensä Guy Schoellerin kanssa, joka oli Hachette -toimittaja, joka oli 20 vuotta Sagania vanhempi. Pariskunta eroi kesäkuussa 1960. Vuonna 1962 hän meni naimisiin Bob Westhoffin, nuoren amerikkalaisen playboyn ja tulevaisuuden keraamikko. Pariskunta erosi vuonna 1963; heidän poikansa Denis Westhoff syntyi kesäkuussa 1962. Hänellä oli sitten pitkäaikainen suhde muotistylistiin Peggy Roche. Hänellä oli myös miespuolinen rakastaja, Bernard Frank, naimisissa oleva esseisti, joka oli pakkomielle lukemiseen ja syömiseen. Hän lisäsi omaa tyyliään "perheeseensä" aloittamalla pitkän suhteen ranskalaisen Playboyn -toimittajan Annick Geillen kanssa, sen jälkeen kun Geille pyysi Saganilta artikkelia lehteensä.
ellauri348.html on line 256: Chinmoy työskenteli yli 40 vuotta maailmanrauhan puolesta. Hän oli vuonna 2007 ehdolla Nobelin rauhanpalkinnon saajaksi. Hänen yksinkertainen viestinsä oli, että maailmanlaajuinen rauha alkaa henkilökohtaisesta rauhasta, rauhasta ihmisen sydämessä: "Kun elämme sydämessä, tunnemme, että olemme kaikki yhtä perhettä. Kun elämme puossa, tunnemme, että on liian ahdasta."
ellauri348.html on line 258: Chinmoy tunnetaan Suomessa ehkä parhaiten Kansainvälisestä rauhanjuoksusta (World Harmony Run), jossa juoxukalja siirtyy juoksijalta toiselle ja maasta toiseen. Viestijuoksu on järjestetty kaikissa maanosissa, yli 130 maassa. Suomessa juoksu on järjestetty yhdeksän kertaa vuodesta 1987 lähtien. Tapahtuman suojelijoina Suomessa ovat olleet muun muassa rouva Tellervo Koivisto, ministeri Elisabeth Rehn, tohtori Pentti Arajärvi ja kansanedustaja Erkki Tuomioja. Suomessa Rauhanjuoksua ovat tukeneet valtioneuvos Harri Holkeri ja useana vuonna Suomen Urheiluliitto. Vuoden 1983 rauhannobelisti Lech Wałęsa on sanonut: Rauhanjuoksun reitti yhdistää kaikki maat yhdeksi, ikään kuin niiden rajoja ei olisi olemassa. Presidentti Putin on työskennellyt uutterasti sen puolesta, ettei Iso- ja Vähä-Venäjän rajaa olisi olemassa. Israel tekee samaan aikaan parhaansa poistaaxeen Filistean mailta joutavia rajapyykkejä. Joelta merelle miekalla piirrämme rajan.
ellauri348.html on line 266: Jesse James ei ollut sankari, vaikka romaaneissa kuvattiin, eikä hänellä ollut hyväntekeväisyyttä edistävää Robin Hood -kompleksia kuten jotkut ovat saattaneet ehdottaa. James yhdessä vanhemman veljensä Frankin kanssa pyrki rikastumaan rikkomalla kaikkia sääntöjä. Wannabe jengin jäsen tappoi tämänp ahamaineisen etelävaltiolaisen rosvon, kun hän suunnitteli seuraavaa pystyryöstöään.
ellauri348.html on line 271: Joulukortteihin leimaamme Olavi Pylkkäsen Voitto-Sanomien aikaisilla leimasimilla sanat: Ja me toivotam / Onnellista ja hyvää joulua! Leimasta tuppaa tulla joko liian himmeä tai lukukelvottoman tuhruinen, mikä Seijaa vähän hävettää. Toivottaminen on toiveen osoittamista toisille, vähän sellasta siunaamista. Siunaaja, kuten kuvassa jossa Jaakob ovelasti siunaa Efraimia ja Manassea kädet ristissä, jotta nuorempi veli Efraim saa paremman eli oikean käden siunauxen, tekee toivotuxen käsimerkeillä. Joulupukin tehtäväxi jää toivomuxen toteutus.
ellauri348.html on line 413: Hänen mukaansa nuorten pitäisi kehittää taitoja, joilla he voivat luotettavasti suuntautua ja navigoida tulevaisuuden yhä epävarmemmassa digitaalisessa ja globaalissa työelämässä. Salmela-Aron mukaan sosiaaliset taidot, sisukkuus ja sopeutumiskyky ovat avaintekijöitä menestykseen.
ellauri348.html on line 427: Kognitiivisella psykoterapialla on vahva teoreettinen ja tieteellinen pohja. Psykoterapiamuodoista se on tieteellisesti tutkituin. Sen on todettu tehokkaaksi esimerkiksi masennuksen, mielialahäiriöiden (mm. kaksisuuntainen mielialahäiriö), ahdistuneisuushäiriön (muun muassa paniikkihäiriö, fobiat, pakko-oireinen häiriö ja traumaperäinen stressihäiriö), paniikkihäiriön, sosiaalisten pelkojen ja syömishäiriöiden hoidossa. Myös muita psykosomaattisia ongelmia, päihderiippuvuutta, persoonallisuushäiriöitä ja skitsofreniaa on hoidettu ahnasta lähestymistä käyttäen. Se estää myös oireiden uusiutumista, koska psykoterapiassa opitaan oireiden tunnistamista ja itsehoitokeinoja.
ellauri348.html on line 478: Morrissey on julkisuudessa puolustanut brittiläistä identiteettiä, jota monikulttuurinen politiikka ja maahanmuutto hänen mukaansa uhkaavat. Hän vastustaa muslimien halal-teurastusta ja juutalaisten šehita-teurastusta. Hän vastustaa Britannian EU-jäsenyyttä koska katsoo Euroopan unionin tukahduttavan vapauttaan. Morrissey tukee laitaoikeistolaista For Britain -puoluetta omien sanojensa mukaan sen avointa keskustelua, sananvapautta ja tasa-arvoa lain edessä puolustavan kannan sekä kaltaistensa eläinten hyvinvointiin liittyvän kannan vuoksi. Morrissey on tukenut myös kiisteltyä English Defence Leaguen johtajana tunnetuksi tullutta oikeistolaista kansalaisaktivisti Tommy Robinsonia tämän tultua vangituksi raiskausoikeudenkäyntiensä lainvastaisesta raportoinnista. Robinsonilla on useita tuomioita myös väkivaltarikoksista ja petoksista. Morrisseyn tuki Robinsonille herätti Britanniassa paheksuntaa, ja hänen konserttiinsa suunniteltiin rasisminvastaista mielenosoitusta kesällä 2018. Morrissey perui kaikki Euroopan konserttinsa, myös Suomessa.
ellauri348.html on line 689: Annarosa Anat Shemesh 1, Robert Kohn, Tzvia Blumstein, Nabil Geraisy, Ilja Novikov, Itzhak Levav
ellauri348.html on line 706: Kukaan ei halua menettää lomssaa, kaaraa, henkeään, tässä järjestyksessä. Poliisin ammatti on sixi yhteiskunnan tärkein, tuumii Monnica. Law and order. On teillä sveduilla millä mällätä sanoo kunnioittavasti musta matu kristitty. Åsalla näyttää olevan myös finne-xenofobia. Siltikin hyvinvointivaltiossa sattuu paljon häpeällistä. Se että perhe voisi nousta nokintajärjestyxessä akateemisella koulutuksella tuntui jo 2002 vanhanaikaiselta. Sosiaalitantan ja opettajan lapsista tuli tarjoilija ja poliisi. Ne sutor supra crepidam. Homeless or university professor. Psykoterapeutti Nilsonne ei pidä proffista noin setämiehinä, mutta muuten kyllä. Puolustaa myös lääkeyrityxiä. Sivujuonena Margaret Thatcherin hirmuhallitusta uhmanneet terroristit, jotka influenssan ohella selittivät mixi kädetön passipoliisi Monnica pääsi veeteenä rikostutkintaan, saatiin vähäeleisesti nitistetyxi.
ellauri348.html on line 816: Fossiilisten polttoaineiden lobbaajien läsnäolo ja sen isäntää sotkenut ilmastokieltoskandaali tuskin saivat ilmastohuippukokouksen parhaaseen alkuun. Joitakin pieniä onnistumisia on kuitenkin tapahtunut, erityisesti tappio- ja vahinkorahaston edistyminen.
ellauri348.html on line 829: obo_doll-en.svg/500px-Bobo_doll-en.svg.png" />
ellauri348.html on line 831: Bobo
ellauri348.html on line 833: Bobo-nukkekokeessa tutkittiin ympäristön vaikutusta lasten oppimiseen ja toimintaan. Kokeessa näytettiin lapsille video miehestä, joka pahoinpiteli bobo-nukkea. Lapset tuotiin myöhemmin huoneeseen, jossa oli samanlainen bobo-nukke, kuin videossa ja lapset alkoivat epäröimättä pahoinpitelemään nukkea videon miehen tavoin. Videoon kuului myös päätösosio, jossa mies kohtasi seuraamuksia teoistaan. Kävi ilmi, että lapset, jotka näkivät miestä palkittavan videolla, pahoinpitelivät nukkea todennäköisemmin kuin lapset, jotka näkivät miestä rangaistavan videolla.
ellauri348.html on line 844: Bandura väitti että "On ironian huippua, kun ihmiset, jotka käyttävät vapauden instituutioiden takaamia vapauksia, halveksivat vapautta illuusiona", ja että "kiihkeä ympäristödeterministi, joka kehottaa ihmisiä muuttamaan ympäristöään, on huvittavalla tavalla takomassa bobonukkea."
ellauri348.html on line 944: sosiaalinen älykkyys (esimerkiksi Robert Kennedyn henkilöittämä)
ellauri348.html on line 988: Robert E. McGrath muokkasi inventaariota lisäämällä neljä uutta asteikkoa (positiivisuus, tulevaisuus, vastaanottavaisuus, älylliset pyrkimykset) ja poistamalla neljä aikaisempaa: johtajuus, into, toivo ja kiitollisuus. Hän ehdotti viittä hyvettä (toisen asteen tekijöitä) Petersonin ja Seligmanin kuuden hypoteesin sijasta. Nämä hyveet olivat: ihmissuhde, emotionaalinen, älyllinen, pidättyväisyys ja tulevaisuuteen suuntautuminen.
ellauri348.html on line 1027: Sveizi on tuottanut 25 nobelistia 8M apinan väestöstä. Siellä on rutkasti rahaa pankissa ja paljon Saxasta paenneita juutalaisia.
ellauri348.html on line 1114: Rohkeutta voi kehittää olemalla rohkea. Ilmari uskalsi mennä Kumpulan uima-altaaseen avustettuna. Rohkeutta voi edistää myös kazomalla elokuvia ja kuuntelemalla urheata musaa. Rohkeutta edistäviä elokuvia ovat esim. Hotel Rwanda, Batman Begins, High Noon, Schindler List sekä United 93. Rohkeutta edistäviä sävelmiä ovat mm. doorilainen eli c-duuri asteikko (Platon), Bob Marleyn Get It Up, Nasin Yes I can, Frank Sinatran My Way, Stevie Wonderin Live for the city ja Helen Reddyn Aikuinen nainen. Ei ihme että amerikkalaiset ovat maailman urheimpia, kun melkein kaikki urheutta edistävä viihde on amerikkalaista. Elokuvien kazominen voi ylläpitää ja vahvistaa nuorten toivoa. Älkää kazoko Greta Thunbergin tiktokkeja, ne vaan masentaa! Kannattaa keskittää huomio optimismiin esim. lukemalla aamulla optimistisia artikkeleita, uutisia ja tarinoita sekä havainnoimalla ympärillä surisevaa myönteisyyttä.
ellauri348.html on line 1128: Avoimuus uusille kokemuxille on tärkeää! Eskihän sanoi juuri samaa! Jännityxen eziminen ja avoimuus fantasialle. Juuri näitähän genrejä löytyy esim. Netflixistä. Luovat ihmiset ovat kyltymättömiä. Luovat yxilöt ympäröivät izensä kauniilla esineillä ja kaunottarilla. Totuttu tapa on kokemuxen moninaisuuden tappaja. Luovuus on vain asioiden yhdistämistä, sanoi Steve Jobs. Luovat ihmiset meditoivat milloin joutavat. Vastoinkäymisistä on myös paljon apua. Gerorge Lukas ajoi pöpelikköön ja siitä tuli ohjaaja. Julio Iglesias teki saman ja siitä tuli laulaja. Teuvo osti uuden Taunuxen ja kuoli. Jose Carreras lopetti kemistin karräärin ja siitä tuli maailmankuulu tenori. Pane se piippusi ja polta.
ellauri348.html on line 1134: Nämä ovat suostuvaisilla aikuisilla positiivisessa suhteessa hyvinvointi-indikaattoreihin. Leikkisät aikuiset lähestyvät toistensa elimiä uteliaana ja hyvässä etukenossa. Psykologi Thomas Curran ja sen kolleega Robert Vallerand saanovat intohimon olevan yhteydessä henkilökohtaisesti merkityxelliseen ja korkeasti arvostettuun toimintaansa. Thomas Curran on perfektionismin maailmanluokan edustaja. Professori Vallerand on älyttömän hyvin perillä passiohedelmistä.
ellauri349.html on line 147: Koko Suomi otti osaa Eskin puukotuxeen. Ei se jätä ketään kylmäxi, ei valitettavasti edes uhria. Avatkaa vähän tätä! Eskin merkitys Suomelle on sama kuin Bob Dylanin, John Lennonin, veden ja ilman. Olet vesi jota hengitän. Ize ajattelen izeäni Röntty-Reetana. Lasten kanssa Eski oli kielteinen. "Jorma" Uotisen haastattelu on sevverran limainen ettei sitä pysty kuuntelemaan kerralla.
ellauri349.html on line 151: Mieltymyxeni anglosaxeihin, erityisesti Yhdysvaltoihin, oli jotain tavattoman vulgääriä Snobista. Kukahan tässä varsinainen snobi oli, pyrkimässä keskiluokasta kalifixi kalifin paikalle?
ellauri349.html on line 239: Vuoden 1979 jälkeen hän katosi jonkin verran ranskalaisesta kirjallisuudesta. Hän sanoi Libération- lehden haastattelussa vuonna 1997: "Ranska on melkein paikka maailmassa, jossa ihmiset tuntevat minut vähiten! Mutta onko minun tehtäväni vastata? En halua.» Anglosaksisissa maissa hänen kirjoituksensa ovat lukuisten analyysien kohteena. Naistaiteilijat, kuten saksalainen Rosemarie Trockel tai brittiläinen Siobhan Liddell ja Margaret Whitford, olivat ihan pähkinöinä hänen työstään.
ellauri349.html on line 357: Oot homofoobinen, lätkässä sentteri
ellauri349.html on line 490: Raymond Claude Ferdinand Aron est issu d'une famille juive et d'un milieu aisé des deux côtés. Ses parents sont Gustave Émile Aron (1870-1934) et Suzanne Levy (1877-1940). Son grand-père maternel, Léon Levy, possédait une usine de textile dans le nord de la France. Sa famille paternelle venait de Lorraine où elle était établie depuis la fin du XVIIIe siècle. Son grand-père paternel, Isidore (dit Ferdinand) Aron, était grossiste en textile à Rambervillers, puis Nancy (Lorraine). Un de ses grand-oncles paternels, Paul Aron, était le père de Max Aron, médecin biologiste à la faculté de médecine de Strasbourg. Ferdinand, le grand-père paternel de Raymond, prédit à celui-ci à sa naissance une grande carrière. Gustave Aron refusa de prendre la suite de l'affaire familiale et fit de brillantes études de droit; il publia des travaux juridiques, mais n'étant reçu que deuxième à l'agrégation de droit alors qu'un seul poste était attribué, il abandonna la perspective d'enseigner à l'université et devint professeur de droit à l'École normale supérieure de l'enseignement technique. Il arrêta de travailler au début du XXe siècle, vécut dès lors de l'héritage familial et fit construire une maison à Versailles en 1913-1915 avec un court de tennis. La famille Aron retourna ensuite à Paris. Après la guerre, Gustave Aron investit en bourse, mais sa fortune fut perdue du fait de la crise économique de 1929 et il fut obligé de reprendre un emploi. Il mourut en 1934 d'une crise cardiaque. La mère de Raymond mourut en juin 1940 à Vannes.
ellauri349.html on line 492: Cette fortune familiale disparue avait permis aux trois enfants Aron de mener une vie aisée et de faire de bonnes études. Le frère aîné de Raymond, Adrien Aron (1902-1969), a étudié au lycée Hoche et poursuit par une classe de mathématiques supérieures et une licence en droit[7], mais il était plus attiré par une vie facile et devint un grand joueur de tennis et de bridge et mena une vie de « flambeur », à l'opposé de Raymond et au grand dam de leur père. Avant la naissance d'Adrien, la mère avait accouché d'un enfant mort-né. Après Raymond vint un troisième garçon, Robert Aron, qui obtint une licence en droit et en philosophie, publia une étude sur Descartes et Pascal[Laquelle ?] et après son service militaire entra dans l'administration de la Banque de Paris et des Pays-Bas (devenue en 1982 Paribas, qui fut ensuite rachetée en 2000 par la BNP pour former BNP Paribas), selon certains grâce à Raymond, qui jouait régulièrement au tennis avec son directeur.
ellauri349.html on line 611: Ja sit tää dabölou seven uhoilu. Taukoamaton pöpöttäjä Eski puhuu toiminnasta. Haha, toiminnasta se on lukenut vain kirjoista. Kuningattaren salaisessa palveluxessa, lupa tappaa. Koko tyyppi on syvästi vastenmielinen, britti hegemonian agony. Miten Esa on niin innostunut kaikista mauttomista snobeista? Koska se on ize mauton snobi, tietysti.
ellauri349.html on line 704: Eskin kannalta oli convenient, ettei systeemitieteessä tarvinnut määritellä mitään, senkun antoi mennä. Mikä "ylärekisteri"? Mikä "majesteetti"? Who cares. Marxille se oli selvää kuin pläkki, mutta Aalto-yliopistolle sopi obfuskaatio. Kuka kaipaa Marxia, riittää kun mietiskelemme jotain lähellä olevaa (Heidegger). Let it be, he Jude, the movement you need is on your shoulder. Eskin luennot ei ole sokraattista dialektiikkaa eikä interaktiota. Interaktiona ne ovat lähinnä saarnoja, tositeeveetä, tai kissavideoita. Kuuntele Eskin nonstop sössötystä ja mieti omiasi. Se on Eskin filosofia: jokainen ajatelkoon omiaan. Merkitys ei ole sulkemista vaan avaamista, sanoi Eskin usein lehteilemä Mauri Merlot-Pönttökin. Fucking Merlot. Tärkeämpää kuin uusi tieto on se tietty edestakainen liike ja vanhan vatvominen. Toisto tyylikeinona.
ellauri349.html on line 827: Sijaisnäyttelijä Shelley Michelle kertoo esittäneensä Kim Basingerin, Madonnan ja Julia Robertsin ruumiita. Hänen mukaansa sijaisnäyttelijää kohdellaan kuvauksissa kuin kana-ateriaa. ”Tuokaa rinnat, tuokaa reidet, tuokaa jalat!” Varminta on mennä sohvan taaxe kun alkaa sexikohtaus.
ellauri350.html on line 155: Johnista tuli kuulu pragmaatikko, vaikka köyhä. He is one of the successful Philosophers. He has ranked on the list of those famous people who were born on October 20, 1859. He is one of the Richest Philosophers who were born in VT. He also has a position among the list of Most popular Philosophers. But his net worth is estimated only at $1-5M, the lowest quote among celebrities. He died on Jun 1, 1952 (age 92). Birth sign Libra.
ellauri350.html on line 179: Tunteisiin voi vaikuttaa. Tee kaikki mahdollinen kenkien ja tukan suhteen. Vältä ylipukeutumista. Chanel 5 on hyvä valinta. Persoonallisuus on tärkeä joten muista hymyillä. Kannattaa pyrkiä olemaan charmikas, leikkisä, humoristinen ja sexikäs. Kazo ennen tapaamista Disneyn Kaunotar ja hirviö. Hieronta tekee typyistä anteliaita. Sen neuvoi muille pojille Mikko Könkkölä. Voi puhua myös ranskaa sängyssä. Jos olet antelias, sinä pääset plussalle, obviously. Mennänkö teille, meille vai pyöräkellariin?
ellauri350.html on line 246: - Jos saat pahaa aladoobia älä vaihda deitin kanssa annosta.
ellauri350.html on line 259: Atticus saa inspiraationsa filosofi Atticuksesta joka sai inspiraationsa Attikan maakunnasta jossa se oli professorina. Monet julkkikset ovat lainanneet Atticuksen töitä, mukaan lukien Karlie Kloss, Alicia Keys, Emma Roberts, The Chainsmokers, The Mainliners, The Derelict Alcoholics, Maroon 5, Rachel Bilson, Woodrow Wilson, The Kardashians ja Homer Simpson. His inspiration or his favorite writers includes Walt Whitman, Charles Bukowski, Jack Kerouac, Lord Byron, Sylvia Plath, and Maya Angelou (n.h.). Muut ovat jotain retkuja. He likes to wear masks during his public gathering.
ellauri350.html on line 269: Hänestä tuli runoilija ja kirjailija nuoren aikuisiän satunnaisten töiden jälkeen. Näihin kuuluivat paistokokki, seksityöntekijä (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Sex_worker), yökerhoesiintyjä, Porgy ja Bess -näyttelijä, Southern Christian Leadership Conference -koordinaattori ja kirjeenvaihtaja Egyptissä ja Ghanassa Afrikan demoralisoinnin aikana. Angelou oli myös näyttelijä, kirjailija, ohjaaja ja näytelmien, elokuvien ja julkisten televisio-ohjelmien tuottaja. Vuonna 1982 hänet nimitettiin ensimmäiseksi Reynoldsin Amerikan tutkimuksen professoriksi Woke Forest -yliopistossa Winston-Salemissa, Pohjois-Carolinassa. Angelou oli aktiivinen kansalaisvääryysliikkeessä ja työskenteli Martin Luther King Jr.:n ja Malcolm X:n kanssa. 1990-luvulta alkaen hän esiintyi noin 80 kertaa vuodessa luentopiirissä, mitä hän jatkoi 80-vuotiaaksi asti. Vuonna 1993 Angelou lausui runonsa "On the Pulse of Morning (1993) Bill Clintonin ensimmäisissä vihkiäisissä mikä teki hänestä ensimmäisen runoilijan, joka lausui avajaispuheen sitten Robert Frostin John F. Kennedyn avajaisissa vuonna 1961. Angelou kertoi ystävälleen Oprah Winfreylle, että puhelu, jossa häntä pyydettiin kirjoittamaan ja lausumaan runo, tuli televisiotuottaja Harry Thomasonilta, joka järjesti arpajaiset pian Clintonin valinnan jälkeen.
ellauri350.html on line 275: Burr said that he weighed 12.75 pounds (5.8 kg) at birth, and was chubby throughout his childhood. "When you're a little fat boy in public school, or any kind of school, you're just persecuted something awful," he said. Later accounts of Burr's life say that he hid his homosexuality to protect his career. Burr had many hobbies over the course of his life: cultivating orchids and collecting wine, art, stamps, and seashells. He was very fond of cooking. He was interested in flying, sailing, and fishing. According to A&E Biography, Burr was an avid reader with a retentive memory. He was also among the earliest importers and breeders of Portuguese water dogs in the United States. Burr threw several "goodbye parties" before his death on September 12, 1993, at his Sonoma County ranch near Healdsburg. He was 76 years old.
ellauri350.html on line 314: Atticus mainitsee vaikuttajina laajan joukon taiteilijoita ja kirjailijoita, mukaan lukien sellaiset runoilijat, muusikot ja julkisuuden henkilöt 1900-luvun puolivälistä kuin Marcus Aurelius, Jack Kerouac, Ernest Hemingway, Mary Oliver, F. Scott Fitzgerald, Claude Monet, Bob Dylan, Robert Frost, Chet Baker ja Steve McQueen.
ellauri350.html on line 596: - "Onnellisuus korvaa pituudella sen, mikä paxuudesta puuttuu." - Robert Frost (maaliskuu 1959)
ellauri350.html on line 821: Motivaatiovalmentaja Anthony Robbins on sanonut ytimekkäästi: "intohimon määrä suhteessa on suoraan verrannollinen siedetyn epävarmuuden määrään: p = kU." Esther Perel kirjoittaa tästä kirjassaan Mating in Captivity. Harmonisessa intohimossa annetaan vapaasta tahdosta. Soveltava filosofi Alain Bottom kysyy kirjassaan: Why will you marry the wrong person? Mixet minua, olen vähiten väärä ihminen. Li Andersson on sellainen. Se ei takuulla pääse presidentixi samasta syystä kuin Bones ei pääse päälliköxi Jeffersonianissa. Termiitit kuten Jerry Cotton eivät pidä järkevyydestä, ne menee feromonit edellä. Ei kannata odotella sitä oikeaa. Huono presidentti lyhentää telomeerejä. Iloisilla on kivempaa, ne ovat iloisempia. Optimistin elämä on monin tavoin parempaa kuin pessimistin. Sen lasi on vielä puolitäysi kun pessimistin on jo puolityhjä. He ovat myös sosiaalisia ja pidettyjä (mixi?). Six koska ne luulevat että muutkin (paizi vihulaiset) ovat kivoja, ja että elämällä on joku tarkoitus. Jotain izeäkin suurempaa, tiimihenkeä. Ne toimivat snipereinä Kosovossa ja makaavat porukalla Arlingtonissa. Onni on maailman yleisvaluutta, niikö dollari. Ne jotka sanovat ettei rahalla saa onnea ovat köyhiä.
ellauri351.html on line 152: Lorenz pohtii vanhaa filosofista kysymystä siitä, antavatko aistimme meille oikein tietoa maailmasta sellaisena kuin se on vai tarjoavatko meille vain illuusion. Hänen vastauksensa tulee evoluutiobiologiasta. Vain piirteet, jotka auttavat meitä selviytymään ja lisääntymään, välittyvät. Jos aistimme antaisivat meille väärää tietoa ympäristöstämme, olisimme pian sukupuuttoon. Siksi voimme olla varmoja, että aistimme antavat meille oikeaa tietoa, sillä muuten emme olisi täällä lämpimässä kattilassa kuin sammakot petetyksi tulleina.
ellauri351.html on line 161: Battler Britton syntyi vuonna 1932 Lancasterissa ja vietti lapsuudessaan usein aikaa perheensä loma-asunnossa järvialueella. Brittonin tärkeimmät panokset on koottu kahteen kirjaan. Teoksessa Belief and Imagination (1998) hän kehittää ajatuksiaan totuudesta ja psyykkestä todellisuudesta. Hän ehdottaa, että usko on se, joka antaa todellisuuden aseman haaveille ja ideoille, joita sitten käsitellään faktoina. Hän pitää uskoa osana epistemofiilistä vaistoa, joka on välttämätön elämälle epävarmuuden edessä. Uskomukset ovat mielikuvituksia, joita pidetään psyykkinä esineinä ja jotka – emotionaalisesti panostettuina – vaativat surua, jos niistä halutaan luopua. Hän erottaa uskon tiedosta (johon se usein rinnastetaan) sillä perusteella, että uskomuksen haltija hyväksyy sen mahdollisuuden olla totta. (Täh?) Hän ehdottaa, että tieto siitä, että jollakulla on usko, joka ei ole tosiasian läsnäolo, vaatii psykologista kehitystä; nimittäin kyky yhdistää subjektiivinen kokemus ja objektiivinen itsetietoisuus niin, että ihminen voi "näkeä itsensä" uskovan. Hän ehdottaa, että tämä edellyttää kolmiomaisen psyykkisen tilan läsnäoloa, jossa on kolmas asema, josta subjektiivisen minän voidaan havaita olevan suhteessa ideaan. Tätä tarvitaan todellisuuden testaamiseen, ja se riippuu Oidipus-kompleksin sisäisen version sietokyvystä.
ellauri351.html on line 163: Sigmund Freud tunnisti alun perin subjektin ympäristössä olevat ihmiset termillä "objekti" tunnistaakseen ihmiset halun kohteina. Fairbairn poikkesi radikaalisti Freudista väittämällä, että ihmiset eivät etsi tyydytystä halusta, vaan itse asiassa etsivät tyydytystä, joka syntyy suhteessa todellisiin muihin.
ellauri351.html on line 166: Esineet käsitetään alun perin lapsen mielessä niiden toimintojen perusteella ja niitä kutsutaan osaobjekteiksi. Rinta, joka ruokkii nälkäistä lasta, on "hyvä rinta", kun taas nälkäinen vauva, joka ei löydä rintaa, on suhteessa "pahaan rintaan". "Tarpeeksi hyvässä" helpottavassa ympäristössä osaobjektien toiminnot muuttuvat lopulta kokonaisten kohteiden ymmärtämiseksi. Tämä vastaa kykyä sietää epäselvyyttä, nähdä, että sekä "hyvä" että "huono" rinta ovat osa samaa äitihahmoa. Jopa on outoa sepustusta.
ellauri351.html on line 170: Britton on aina käyttänyt kirjallisuutta eräänlaisena analyyttisen teorian keskustelukumppanina. Belief and Imagination sisältää pitkiä keskusteluja ja väitteitä Wordsworthista ja Coleridgesta, Blaken, Miltonista ja Rilkestä sekä Freudista, Kleinistä ja Bionista; ja Sex, Death and the Superego sisältää vakuuttavan Jobin kirjan ja kiehtovan laajennetun pohdinnan Wagnerin oopperoiden roolista Jungin kirjeenvaihdossa Sabina Spielreinin kanssa. Britton on lääketieteen gumanisti avant la lettre.
ellauri351.html on line 188: Paki Abdul Sattar Edhi ei ollut kovin uskonnollinen. Edhi-säätiö rahoitettiin kokonaan yksityisillä lahjoituksilla. Se tuki mm. New Orleansin kurjalistoa. Kun mediaviranomaiset kysyivät toistuvista pidätyksistä mm. USAssa ja Israelissa, Edhi sanoi: "Ainoa selitys, jonka voin ajatella, on partani ja mekkoni." Syyskuun 11. päivän jälkeisessä ilmastossa Yhdysvaltain ja Kanadan matkailuviranomaiset pidättivät hänet lisäkuulusteluja varten. Edhin kuoltua 88-vuotiaana munuaisten vajaatoimintaan säätiötä johtaa koko hänen perheensä. Edhi sai Leninin ja Lontoon rauhanpalkinnon. Google juhlisti Edhiä 28. helmikuuta 2017 Google Doodlella, joka ylisti hänen "supertehokasta" ambulanssipalveluaan. Noobelia ei kuulunut. Munuaisten luovuttajaa ei löytynyt. Edhi luovutti ja testamenttasi silmänsä tarvizeville. Hautajaisissa oli pelkkiä pakeja.
ellauri351.html on line 223: Traumakeskuksen työ ei tuolloin ollut muuta kuin psykiatrian reuna-alaa. Tämä muuttui 9/11:n jälkeen, joka muutti trauman kansalliseksi kansanterveyskriisiksi. Vietnamin sodan aikana Yhdysvaltain hallitus oli taistellut PTSD-diagnoosin käyttöönoton puolesta, mutta terrorismin vastainen sota halusi vedota traumaan. "Kansallinen trauma" oli hyödyllinen; se antoi USA:lle mahdollisuuden asettaa itsensä uhriksi eikä globaaliksi hyökkääjäksi. Ja kun kävi selväksi, että vastoin hallituksen lupauksia, Irakin ja Afganistanin sodat eivät pian loppuisi, veteraanien terveydenhoidosta tuli kiireellinen poliittinen huolenaihe. Vuosina 2004–2012 puolustusministeriön rahoitus PTSD:lle nousi pilviin 30 miljoonasta 300 miljoonaan dollariin, mikä nosti traumatieteen kunnioitettavan valtavirran psykiatrisen tutkimuksen kärjelle.
ellauri351.html on line 225: Terrorin vastainen sota sai käänteen rahoitetun traumatutkimuksen tyypissä kohti PTSD:n neurobiologiaa. Tämä tuli van der Kolkille todisteena ja antoi hänelle mahdollisuuden päästä eroon palautuneiden muistisotien kuolleesta painosta. Liittovaltion rahoitus oli myös omaksumassa yhä avoimemmin ei-lääketieteellisiä hoitoja. Välittömästi 11. syyskuun iskujen jälkeen van der Kolk ja traumakeskus hoitivat ensiapuhenkilöitä ja siviilejä silmän liikkeen herkistymisen ja uudelleenkäsittelyn avulla, jossa potilas ajattelee traumaattista kokemusta, kun taas kliinikko ohjaa potilaan silmiä edestakaisin. Vaikka van der Kolk oli alun perin skeptinen, hänestä tuli EMDR-evankelista, joka johti National Institutes of Healthin rahoittamaa tutkimusta, jossa verrattiin EMDR:ää Prozaciin PTSD:n hoidossa. Vuonna 2008 hän aloitti ensimmäisen NIH:n rahoittaman tutkimuksen joogan tehokkuudesta PTSD:n hoidossa. EMDR on lyhennys englanninkielisistä sanoista Eye Movement Desensitization and Reprocessing. Hän suoritti myös tutkimusta neurofeedbackista, terapiasta, joka näyttää potilaille reaaliaikaisia lukemia pulssistaan ja aivoaalloistaan ja opettaa heitä säätelemään itseään. Tätä "somaattisten terapioiden" arsenaalia yhdisti se, että ne kohdistuivat kehoon kognition (kuten kognitiivinen käyttäytymisterapia) tai kieleen (kuten puheterapia) sijaan.
ellauri351.html on line 227: Sillä välin van der Kolk alkoi muodostaa liittoutumien verkostoa, joka voisi muuttaa trauman hoitoa. ("Hän on aina ollut uskomaton verkostoituja", muistelee Herman.) Tuohon aikaan somaattiset terapiat, jotka vaihtelivat kokonaisvaltaisesta joogasta "sisäisen aistin" käytäntöihin, olivat hyväksytyn hoidon laitamilla. Harjoittajien ryhmälle, joka on pitkään hylätty New Age -hiutaleina, van der Kolkin innostus tuli jumalan lahjana. "Ensimmäistä kertaa perinteinen valtavirran psykiatri ja neurobiologian tutkija perusteli psykologisten häiriöiden vaikutusten ymmärtämisen tärkeyttä", Babette Rothschild, The Body Remembers -kirjan kirjoittaja, sanoi Psychotherapy Networkerille vuonna 2004. Mutta nämä uudet lähestymistavat olivat kiistanalaisia. Toisen traumatutkijan Richard Bryantin mielestä van der Kolk oli "syrjäyttänyt itsensä tieteellisenä ajattelijana".
ellauri351.html on line 237: Mutta traumaattisen kirjaimellisuuden houkuttelevuus ei ole niinkään sen tieteellinen ankaruus kuin sen tieteellinen loisto, joka näyttää lupaavan objektiivisia, käsillä olevia ratkaisuja määritteleviin poliittisiin kriiseihin. Viimeisten kolmen vuosikymmenen ajan liberaalit ovat vaatineet, että amerikkalaisen vallan instituutiot, vaikka ne olivat puutteellisia, olivat pohjimmiltaan hyvässä kunnossa. Ne, joille status quo ei toiminut, olivat tervetulleita hakemaan mukaan identiteettiin liittyvää vahinkoa. Mikä voisi olla liberaalille osallistamispolitiikalle, joka perustuu vammautumisvaatimuksiin, hyödyllisempää kuin tapa muuttaa tuo vamma biologiseksi traumaksi, joksikin objektiiviseksi, havaittavaksi ja mitattavaksi aivoissa? 80- ja 90-lukujen traumakulttuurisodan taistelulinjat korostuivat selkein rajoin, kun he keskittyivät narratiiviin – eli julistavien muistojen palauttamiseen ja yhdistämiseen. Jos olit feministi tai sodanvastainen aktivisti, vetosit traumaan; jos olit konservatiivi, et ollut. Mutta tämän päivän trauman kirjaimellinen tulkinta on poliittisesti järjetöntä. Itse asiassa sen sijaan, että käsittelisi traumaa vasemmiston ideologisena aseena, nyt oikeisto haluaa myös puuttua asiaan.
ellauri351.html on line 239: Otetaan uuden oikeistolaisen J. D. Vancen vuoden 2016 muistelma Hillbilly Elegy, joka viittaa hänen Appalakkien köyhyydessä kokeman kroonisen stressin neurobiologisiin vaikutuksiin ja osoittaa, kuinka liberaali eliitti on hylännyt maaseudun valkoiset äänestäjät. Otetaan valitukset miehuuden surkastumisesta ja siittiöiden määrän laskusta. Kutsu sitä miksi haluat, mutta ydinidea on aina trauman muotoinen. Kerran olimme kokonaisia, mutta nyt emme ole; nyt kärsimme sairaudesta, jota meidän on vaikea ymmärtää tai nimetä. Silti tämä haava tarjoaa uuden identiteettimme, yhtä aikaa asian, joka antaa meille oikeuden puhua ja ainoan, joka meillä on sanottavana tehdessämme. Kirjaimellisuutensa takaa, että traumamme takaa sen, mitä uskomme olevan velkaa.
ellauri351.html on line 241: Koko viikon mittaisen retriitin aikana näytti joskus siltä, ettei mikään tapahtuma ollut geopoliittisesti liian laaja tai historiallisesti monimutkainen trauman kautta. Ensimmäisenä iltana van der Kolkin henkilökunta kokoontui hänen kanssaan sviittiinsä. Siellä oli nainen, joka johti TRF:n kansainvälistä haaraa, joka keskittyi traumatyöpajojen kehittämiseen globaalissa etelässä, ja psykoterapeutti, joka kertoi minulle keksineensä "seksuaalisen surun" käsitteen. Yö oli sujunut loistavasti, he olivat yhtä mieltä, kun keskustelu pyörähti Trauma-säätiön maailmanlaajuiseen elintärkeään työhön ja jäljellä olevaan työhön: Ukrainan sotaan, ilmaston lämpenemiseen, pakolaiskriisiin, nälänhätään, sissien väkivaltaan, suureen murrospyörään. historia huutaa lisää traumainterventiota. Oli vaikea ajatella ongelmaa, johon traumaterapia ei olisi vastaus.
ellauri351.html on line 257: Lewin kexi sanan genidentiteetti. Se on nykyään ehkä ainoa säilynyt todiste Lewinin vaikutuksesta tiedefilosofiaan. Mä kexin Norssin ekalla luokalla sanan getiparnetiivi kunen tiennyt että sille on jo sana olemassa, nimittäin akkusatiivi. Genidentiteetti on eksistentiaalinen suhde, joka on objektin synnyn taustalla hetkestä toiseen. Se, mitä yleensä pidämme objektina, koostuu todella useista olioista, jotka ovat objektin vaiheita eri aikoina. Kaksi objektia eivät ole identtisiä, koska niillä on samat yhteiset ominaisuudet, vaan koska toinen on kehittynyt toisesta. Lewin esitteli käsitteen 1922 Habilitationsschrift Der Begriff der Genese in Physik, Biologie und Entwicklungsgeschichte. Tästä käsitteestä ei kuitenkaan koskaan tullut laajan keskustelun ja väittelyn kohde omalla tavallaan. Sen sijaan sen kontekstista poimivat filosofit, kuten Rudolf Carnap, Hans Hermes, Hans Reichenbach, Adolph Grünbaum ja Bas van Fraassen, jotka sisällyttivät tämän käsitteen omiin teorioihinsa, kuten maailmankaikkeuden topologiaan tai mekaniikan aksiomatisointiin. Lewinin ajatuksena oli verrata ja vastakohtaista genidentiteetin käsitettä eri tieteenaloilla paljastaen siten kunkin luonteenomaisen rakenteen ja mahdollistaen niiden luokittelun.
ellauri351.html on line 295: Taleb kritisoi rahoitusalan käyttämiä riskienhallintamenetelmiä ja varoitti rahoituskriiseistä ja hyötyi rökäleenä myöhemmin 2000-luvun lopun finanssikriisistä. Hän kannattaa yhteiskuntaa, jota hän kutsuu "musta joutsen robustiksi" eli yhteiskuntaa, joka kestää vaikeasti ennustettavia tapahtumia. Hän ehdottaa sitä, mitä hän on kutsunut " antihauraudeksi " järjestelmissä; toisin sanoen kyky hyötyä ja kasvaa tietyn luokan satunnaisia tapahtumia, virheitä ja epävakautta sekä "kuperaa kekseliäisyyttä" tieteellisen löydön menetelmänä, jolla hän tarkoittaa, että hajautettu kokeilu toimii paremmin suunnattua tutkimusta.
ellauri351.html on line 303: Taleb väittää, että tilastotieteilijät voivat olla pseudotieteilijöitä harvinaisten tapahtumien ja räjähdysten riskeissä ja peittää epäpätevyytensä monimutkaisilla yhtälöillä. Tämä asenne on herättänyt arvostelua: American Statistical Association omisti The American Statistician -lehden elokuussa 2007 ilmestyneen numeron The Black Swanille. Lehti tarjosi sekoituksen ylistystä ja kritiikkiä Talebin pääkohdista, keskittyen Talebin kirjoitustyyliin ja hänen esitykseensä tilastokirjallisuudesta. Clemsonin yliopiston matematiikan professori Robert Lund kirjoittaa, että Black Swan -kirjassa Taleb on "ajoittain holtiton ja joutuu suurenmoisille liioittelemille; ammatillinen tilastotieteilijä pitää kirjaa kaikkialla naiivina". Lund kuitenkin myöntää, että "on monia kohtia, joissa olen samaa mieltä Talebin kanssa", ja kirjoittaa, että "kirja on pakollinen" kaikille "rahoituksesta ja/tai filosofisista todennäköisyyksistä etänä kiinnostuneille".
ellauri351.html on line 305: Taleb ja Nobel-palkittu Myron Scholes ovat vaihtaneet henkilökohtaisiin hyökkäyksiin, erityisesti sen jälkeen, kun Talebin artikkeli Espen Gaarder Haugin kanssa siitä, miksi kukaan ei käyttänyt Black–Scholes–Merton-kaavaa. Taleb sanoi, että Scholes oli vastuussa vuoden 2008 talouskriiseistä, ja ehdotti, että "tämän kaverin pitäisi olla vanhainkodissa tekemässä sudokua. Hänen varat ovat räjähtäneet kahdesti. Hänen ei pitäisi päästää Washingtoniin luennoimaan kellekään riskeistä." Scholes vastasi, että Taleb yksinkertaisesti "populalisoi ideoita ja ansaitsee rahaa myymällä kirjoja". Scholes väitti, että Taleb ei lainaa aikaisempaa kirjallisuutta, ja tästä syystä Talebia ei oteta vakavasti akateemisessa maailmassa. Haug ja Taleb (2011) listasivat satoja tutkimusdokumentteja, jotka osoittavat, että Black–Scholes-kaava ei ollut ollenkaan Scholesin kaava, ja väittivät, että taloustiede jätti huomiotta toimijoiden ja matemaatikoiden (kuten Ed Thorpin) kirjallisuuden, jotka olivat kehittäneet kehittyneempiä versioita kaavasta.
ellauri351.html on line 321: Tehokkaan altruismin suosittuja tavoitteita ovat globaali terveys ja kehitys, sosiaalinen eriarvoisuus, eläinten hyvinvointi ja riskit ihmiskunnan selviytymiselle pitkällä aikavälillä.
ellauri351.html on line 322: Liike kehittyi 2000-luvulla, ja nimi tehokkaaksi altruismiksi keksittiin vuonna 2011. Liikkeeseen vaikuttavia filosofeja ovat Peter Singer, Toby Ord ja William MacAskill. Se, mikä alkoi hajanaisen liittoutuman kannattamana arviointitekniikoiden sarjana, kehittyi identiteetiksi. Noin 7 000 aktiivisen altruismin yhteisössä ja vahvat siteet Yhdysvaltojen ja Britannian eliittikouluihin vaikuttava altruismi on liitetty Piilaaksoon ja teknologiateollisuuteen muodostaen tiukan miehekkään alakulttuurin.
ellauri351.html on line 329: oby_Ord.jpg/440px-Toby_Ord.jpg" height="250px" />
ellauri351.html on line 387: Reportteri löysi naisen jolle tuli kaupungin suurimmat kelakorvauxet Hän päätti selvittää mixi. Nainen oli kaunis ja nuoren näköinen. Miten vanha olette? 27v. Hmm. Montako lasta teillä on? 10. Oho! Minkä nimisiä ne ovat? No vanhin on Bob, sitten on Bob, ja sitten tulevat Bob, Bob, Bob, Bob, Bob, Bob, Bob ja Bob. WTF, kaikkienko nimi on Bob? Mitä sanot jos pyydät ne sisälle? Huudan vain Bob heti kotio ja ne kaikki tulevat. Entä kun kuzut ne ruualle? Huudan vain Bob syömään! ja ne kaikki tulevat. Mutta jos haluat kuzua vaan yhden? Helppoa, käytän sukunimiä! Ha, ha, ha.
ellauri351.html on line 454: Joe ja Roberta erosivat. Joe meni naimisiin toisen vaimonsa Shreen kanssa lokakuussa 1993 Jerusalemissa hassidilaisissa häissä. Shree on myös psykotorapeutti.Niin kauan kuin olin tuntenut Joen, olin pelannut samaa perusroolia hänen elämässään. Sen tarkoituksena oli hillitä hänen innostustaan, lievittää hänen ylilyöntejään. En onnistunut kovin hyvin. Nyt on Joe poika Singaporesta kylmänä.
ellauri351.html on line 473: Kuollut mimeetikko ja nobelisti guruttavat voimakkaasti
ellauri351.html on line 484: On siis virheellistä vihaamista, siis myös virheetöntä. Niitä alkaa Paavo setviä niteen puolimatkassa. Virheet syntyvät tietobiaxista, sielun syndimekanismeista ja ryhmäjutuista.
ellauri351.html on line 486: Eskin peukuttama luihu talousnobelisti Kahneman (1 n lopussa) on jo monta kertaa ollut paasausten kohteena (albumit 27, 29, 122, 293). Nyze kelpaa guruxi taas Puntun Paavolle. It is also notable that Kahneman's paternal uncle was Rabbi Yosef Shlomo Kahaneman, the head of the Ponevezh Yeshiva. In 2015 Kahneman described himself as a very hard worker, as "a worrier" and "not a jolly person". But, despite this, he said, "I'm quite capable of great enjoyment, and I've had a great life."
ellauri351.html on line 528: ”Toivottavasti ihmiset tarttuvat tähän mahdollisuuteen kurkistaa globaalin eliitin salaliittoon ja toivon mukaan saada vihellettyä peli poikki. Tosin tällä hetkellä näyttää aika toivottomalta, kun koko ajan paljastuu selvemmin, miten kaikki länsimaat ovat tämän globaalin mafian talutusnuorassa. Tosin koko ajan myös ihmiset heräävät…Valoa ja voimia!”
ellauri351.html on line 571: Kirjan pääsanomaksi nousee Maitreyan julkituleminen merkkinä siitä, että ihmiskunta on valmis ottamaan vastaan Maailmanopettajan. Maitreyan perusopetukset, oikeudenmukaisuuden ja jakamisen periaatteen globaali toteutuminen ovat keinoja, joilla ihmiskunta voidaan vielä pelastaa loppuun ajamiselta. Laaja julkinen mielipide kestävän kehityksen välttämättömyydestä maapallon resurssien jakamiseksi vaatiikin jo suureen ääneen sosiaalisen ja taloudellisen pääoman tasapainottamista luonnon resurssien kanssa. Myös arvostettu filosofi, Jaakko Hintikan bändäri amerikkalainen Martha Nussbaum, on kirjassaan Talouskasvua tärkeämpää, korostanut resurssien oikeudenmukaisen jakamisen sekä inhimillisen tasa-arvon tärkeyttä. Rahan tulee olla väline inhimillisen hyvinvoinnin kasvattamiseksi, mutta jatkuvan kasvun tavoittelu rahan itsensä takia, ei palvele ihmiskunnan etua. Maitreyan perusopetuksiin on maallikonkin siis helppo yhtyä.
ellauri351.html on line 612: Alice Ann Bailey (16. kesäkuuta 1880 – 15. joulukuuta 1949, alun perin Alice LaTrobe Bateman) oli englantilainen teosofi, luennoitsija, tuottelias okkulttinen kirjailija ja Lucis Trust -säätiön perustaja. Hän muutti vuonna 1907 Yhdysvaltoihin, jossa hän vietti loppuelämänsä. Alice ja Maitreya on mainittu aiemmin hörhöistä kertovassa paasauxessa albumissa 169. Yrjö Kallisesta piti tulla Maitreya, mutta jäi täpärästi alle äänikynnyxen (kz. albumi 263).
ellauri351.html on line 621: Meidän pitäisi olla hieman hämmästyneitä, ei sixi, että yritykset ovat väärintekijöitä, vaan sixi, että elintarvikkeilla on markkinoita ollenkaan. Miksi ruoalla on markkinat? Miksi millään on globaalit markkinat? Tarkoitan, että globaalit elintarvikemarkkinat ovat hyvin oudot.
ellauri351.html on line 645: Hänellä oli kunnia pitää pääpuhe Kapkaupungissa Etelä-Afrikassa vuonna 2006 juhlistaen arkkipiispa Desmond Tutun rauhanomaista elämää ja Totuus- ja sovintokomission toiminnan 10. vuosipäivää. Häntä myös kunnioitettiin useaan otteeseen nimittämällä hänet Nobelin rauhanpalkinnon saajaksi. Tukikirjeitä lähetettiin 27 maasta.
ellauri351.html on line 661: Vamik Volkan, MD, joka on ollut pitkään mukana kansainvälisessä politiikassa, pusii Mexico Cityn psykoanalyytikkoa Cora Ann Dobbsia, Ph.D.:tä American Psychoanalytic Associationin kokouksessa New Yorkissa.
ellauri351.html on line 683: obsbawm.jpg/440px-Eric_Hobsbawm.jpg" height="300px" />
ellauri351.html on line 684: Eric Hobsbawmilla oli isot korvat, jotta se kuulisi vallankumouksen aaveen hipsimisen paremmin.
ellauri351.html on line 688: Hörökorvainen Eric Hobsbawm syntyi vuonna 1917 Aleksandriassa Egyptissä. Hänen isänsä oli Leopold Percy Hobsbaum (os Obstbaum), juutalainen kauppias Lontoon East Endistä, puolalaista juutalaista syntyperää. Nimi Obstbaum "FruitTree" on kuitenkin saksalainen, ei puolalainen. Hänen äitinsä Nelly Hobsbaum (os Grün), oli kotoisin keskiluokan Itävallan juutalaisperheestä. Vaikka hänen molemmat vanhempansa olivat juutalaisia, kumpikaan ei ollut tarkkaavainen. Hänen varhaislapsuutensa kului Wienissä, Itävallassa, ja Berliinissä, Saksassa. Syntymäaikainen kirjoitusvirhe muutti hänen sukunimensä Hobsbaumista Hobsbawmiksi. Vaikka perhe asui saksankielisissä maissa, hän varttui puhuen englantia äidinkielenään.
ellauri351.html on line 690: Hobsbawm opiskeli Prinz Heinrich- Gymnasium Berlinissä (nykyään Friedrich-List-School), kun natsipuolue tuli valtaan vuonna 1933. Samana vuonna perhe muutti Lontooseen, missä Hobsbawm ilmoittautui St Marylebone Grammar Schooliin. Hänen muuttonsa Saksasta loi väärän uskomuksen, että Hobsbawm oli pakolainen, joka säilyi koko hänen elämänsä, vaikka hän itse asiassa oli syntymästään britti isänsä kansalaisuuden vuoksi.
ellauri351.html on line 692: Elinikäinen marxilainen, hänen yhteiskuntapoliittiset vakaumuksensa vaikuttivat tuhoisasti hänen työnsä luonteeseen. Brittikommarit vaati 2. rintaman avaamista johki Pohjois-Ranskaan ryssien hädän helpottamisexi. Ei jaxa, istutaan ja kazotaan eka kuinka iivanalle käy, oli Churchillin ja Rooseveltin näkemys. Soditaan vaan tuolla siirtomaissa ja odotetaan itärintaman lopputulosta. M15:n ponnisteluista huolimatta vuonna 1947 hänestä tuli historian lehtori Birkbeck Collegessa, Lontoon yliopistossa, jossa tuohon aikaan epätavallisella tavalla henkilökunnan tai opiskelijoiden keskuudessa ei ollut taipumusta kommunismin vastaisuuteen. Hobsbawm sanoi, että McCarthyismista oli olemassa heikompi versio. joka otti valtaansa Isossa-Britanniassa ja vaikutti marxilaisiin tutkijoihin: "En saanut ylennystä 10 vuoteen, mutta kukaan ei heittänyt minua ulos". Poliittiset viholliset kielsivät Hobsbawmilta luennoitsijan Cambridgessa, ja koska hän oli myös estetty jonkin aikaa professuurista Birkbeckissä samoista syistä, hän puhui onnesta, kun hän oli saanut viran Birkbeckissä vuonna 1948 ennen kuin kylmä sota alkoi todella lähteä liikkeelle. Konservatiivien kommentaattori David Pryce-Jones on dementoinut tällaisten uraesteiden olemassaolon.
ellauri351.html on line 695: 1960-luvulta lähtien hänen politiikkansa otti maltillisen käänteen, kun Hobsbawm huomasi, että hänen toiveensa eivät todennäköisesti toteutuneet, eikä hänen enää kannattanut kannattaa "neuvostotyyppisiä sosialistisia järjestelmiä".
ellauri351.html on line 700: Hobsbawmin sanotaan sanoneen, että seksin lisäksi ei ole mitään niin fyysisesti intensiivistä kuin "osallistuminen joukkomielenosoitukseen suuren julkisen korotuksen aikana". Aika intensiivinen hörökorva olikin. Hänen ensimmäinen avioliittonsa oli Muriel Seamanin kanssa vuonna 1943. He erosivat vuonna 1951. Hänen toinen avioliittonsa oli Marlene Schwarzin (vuonna 1962), jonka kanssa hänellä oli kaksi lasta, Julia Hobsbawm ja Andy Hobsbawm. Hänellä oli väh. 1 avioton poika Joshua Bennathan, joka syntyi vuonna 1958 ja kuoli marraskuussa 2014. "Joss" kuoli syöpään viisikymppisenä. Born in Birmingham, Joss was the son of the historian Eric Hobsbawm and the educational psychologist Marion Bennathan. He was raised by his mother and her husband, the economist Esra Bennathan, and went to Newnham Croft primary school, Cambridge, and Bristol grammar school. At the age of 17, Joss married Jenny Corrick and had two children by the age of 20. The couple divorced but remained friends.
ellauri351.html on line 721: Jesuiitat ja jakobiinit oli samaa paskajoukkoa.
ellauri351.html on line 724: Parlamentaarisissa kokouksissa kohdataan väkijoukkojen yleiset ominaisuudet: älyllinen yksinkertaisuus, ärtyneisyys, vihjailu, tunteiden liioittelua ja muutamien johtajien hallitseva vaikutus… On toisinaan kauheaa ajatella voimaa, joka yhdistyy vahvaan vakaumukseen. äärimmäinen ahdasmielisyys antaa miehelle arvovaltaa. Jos äänestäjät koostuisivat vain tieteillä täytetyistä henkilöistä, heidän äänensä eivät olisi parempia kuin tällä hetkellä. Heitä ohjaisivat pääasiassa heidän tunteensa ja juhlahenki. Sivilisaatioita luo ja ohjaa pieni älytön oligarkia, ei koskaan väkijoukot. Väkijoukot toimivat kuin mikrobit.
ellauri352.html on line 79: Stekeler rät dazu, Verkrustungen der gegenwärtigen schematischen analytischen Philosophie aufzulösen und stattdessen einen robusten Umgang mit Analogien und Metaphern besonders auch in philosophischen Kommentierungen von Theorien zu etablieren.
ellauri352.html on line 300: Joidenkin alan toimijoiden kritiikki ja tuen puute vertaisarvioitujen tutkimusten tai objektiivisen kliinisen havainnon yhteydessä on johtanut myyttiin ja leimiin käsitykseen, että surussa on vaiheita. Siitä huolimatta mallin käyttö on jatkunut suosituissa uutis- ja viihdemedioissa
ellauri352.html on line 341: Näemme Durkheimin tämän aiheen ajatusten vaikutuksen Robert Mertonissa ja hänen "Strain Theory" -teoriassa, jonka mukaan sosiaaliset rakenteet voivat johtaa rikollisiin tekoihin, ja kääntäen.
ellauri352.html on line 416: Kaverit eli frendit oli loisto kexintö ihmiskunnalle. Tosin apinat ja muutkin elukat oli sen kexineet aikapäiviä. Homopareista tulee aivan mahtavia taistelupareja, kuten kreikkalaiset tiesivät (esim. Batman ja Robin). Yxi tärkeä käsite on vielä sublimaatio, arkisemmin käteenveto. Sen rentouttavaa vaikutusta ei voi yliarvioida.
ellauri352.html on line 621: I really love Russian writers, especially from the 19th and early 20th Century: Gogol, Tolstoy, Chekhov, Babel. I love the way they take on the big topics. I´m also inspired by a certain absurdist comic tradition that would include influences like Mark Twain, Daniil Kharms, Groucho Marx, Monty Python, Steve Martin, Jack Handey, etc. And then, on top of that, I love the strain of minimalist American fiction writing: Sherwood Anderson, Ernest Hemingway, Raymond Carver, Tobias Wolff.
ellauri352.html on line 646: Tocqueville puolustaa demokratiaa samalla kun tunnistaa siihen liittyvät rahalliset riskit äveristölle. Hän varoittaa erityisesti demokratian mahdollisesta kehityxestä kohti enemmistön diktatuuria tasa-arvon nimissä ja torjuu sellaisen selvästi sosialistisen suuntautumisen. Hän korostaa myös välittävien elinten perustavaa laatua olevaa roolia ja asettuu vastustamaan vallan hajauttamista ja suosittaa jakobiinien keskittämistä yhteen vankilaan. Tocqueville oli vankiloiden kannattaja. Enemmän kuin vangin mukavuus, sen päätavoitteena rikospolitiikassa oli yhteiskunnan suojelu.
ellauri352.html on line 661: Michener adoptoitiin ja kasvatti toinen nainen, eikä hän tiedä biologisista vanhemmistaan. Mabel Michener kasvatti hänet ja kokonaisen liudan muita löytölapsia poikansa Robertin ohessa Bucks Countyssa, Pennsylvaniassa pikkurahalla. Hän lopetti koulun Pennsylvaniassa vuonna 1925 ja jatkoi opintojaan Swarthmore Collegessa Pennsylvaniassa. Michener oli säännöllinen jäsen yliopiston koripallojoukkueessa.
ellauri353.html on line 139: Tää tällänen vieraannuttava "tyttö" ja "poika" ja "sotilas" (Robbe Grillet) on modernismia.
ellauri353.html on line 151: "Minäpä kerron", sanoi poika. Möyheitä pihlajia. Pirun piittausta keskellä ilmistä ihmisten päivää. Raasu sammahti. Korpirojua. Korttikänki. Landepaukkuja. Itävaltalaisen nobelistinazin Handken poissaolokirjassakin oli korttihai. Sekin oli vittu satu!
ellauri353.html on line 227: Vuonna 1966 Buñueliin ottivat yhteyttä Hakimin veljekset, Robert ja Raymond, egyptiläis-ranskalaiset tuottajat, jotka ovat erikoistuneet seksikkäisiin tähtielokuvantekijöiden ohjaamiin elokuviin, ja tarjosivat hänelle mahdollisuuden ohjata elokuvaversio Joseph Kesselin romaanista Belle de Jour, kirja varakkaasta nuoresta naisesta, joka viettää kaksoiselämää pariloituna, ja joka oli aiheuttanut skandaalin sen ensimmäisen julkaisun yhteydessä vuonna 1928. Deneuve ei voinut sietää rasvaista Buñuelia.
ellauri353.html on line 235: Don Rafael Acosta embajador de Miranda, el matrimonio Thévenot, y Florence la hermana de Madame Thévenot, están invitados a cenar en casa del matrimonio Sénechal. Sin embargo, hay una confusión, y Monsieur Sénechal ha salido rumbo a otra cita. Como alternativa, se proponen ir a un restaurante cercano, pero al llegar se dan cuenta de que el dueño del establecimiento ha muerto. A partir de este momento, las reuniones entre este selecto grupo de burgueses se verán interrumpidas por una serie de eventos extraordinarios, algunos reales y otros producto de su imaginación. La alternancia entre lo real y lo onírico produce giros inesperados en la trama, en la que intervienen otros personajes como militares, un obispo, policías, guerrilleros y campesinos, todos causantes de interrupciones durante los frustrados intentos de los seis primeros por sentarse a comer y disfrutar del encanto de ser burgueses.
ellauri353.html on line 268: Hän oli naimisissa usein työtoverinsa Milton Friedmanin (1912–2006) kanssa, joka voitti vuoden 1976 taloustieteen Nobelin. Hänen veljensä, Aaron Director (1901–2004), oli professori Chicagon yliopiston lakikoulussa ja yksi oikeustieteen taloudellisen analyysin perustajista. Kz. myös ulkokultainen video "2 onnekasta ihmistä".
ellauri353.html on line 279: Milton Friedman is widely regarded as the leader of the Chicago school. Of monetary economics. Stresses the importance of the quantity of money. As an instrument of government policy. Terminated. A business cycles and inflation. After graduating in one nine hundred thirty two with a Bachelor of Arts from Rutgers. He received graduate degree. From the University of Chicago. And Columbia University. Since one thousand nine hundred seventy seven. Professor print. Has been a senior research fellow at the Hoover Institution. Homeless or University Professor Friedman received the one nine hundred seventy six Nobel Prize for ECT. That's. In addition to his scientific work. Professor Friedman has written extensively on public policy. Always with primary emphasis on the preservation and extension of. Individual freedoms. In his most important works in this area. Perhaps an ever. The important area. Is life. He has collaborated by. Roads. An accomplished. Economist in her own right. Together they wrote. Capitalism and Freedom. Free to choose. And tyranny of the status quo. Free to choose and tyranny of the status quo later rip it into a T.V. series of the same names that were shown over the public. Public Broadcast stations.
ellauri353.html on line 289: I grew up before the appearance of the street. I even finished my graduate work. For a doctorate in economics before the feminist movement. Really got going. As a result. I was free to choose. Just how I wanted to live my life whether I wanted a full time career in the market place or a part time. Career. Combined with being a homemaker and bringing up a family. I knew I was going to get married. I'd already chosen my husband. I also wanted to have a family. Even after getting used to being married. And I wanted to bring up my children. Myself. I did not want them to be brought up. Either in a child care center. Or by a maid. Naturally by like most people I also wanted to have my cake and even when they left. University Milton and I both went to work in Washington for jobs where economists were there only let it cool. However before we were married. His career took him to New York City. While mine remained in Washington where I live where I like to work and the people I was working with. However we did not look forward to living apart.
ellauri353.html on line 291: Muting on weekends active we were married we had two alternatives. I could get out my job and move to New York. And Private get it there and be able to come back to Washington and. As my boss who I'm sure wasn't serious suggested. I gave up my job and your actively expanded to like full summer. On our honeymoon and marrying. We said. We've returned to New York. Settle down and I got a temporary God. It was interesting for a while but was not very exciting. While we were both working we shared the house work. Until we could afford to hire a part. And there we never sat down and decided what the housework was man's And what part was woman's work there was work to be done. And whoever could do it at the right time period. But that always reminds me of the discussion that Milton had with my young nephew who was visiting with us from years later.
ellauri353.html on line 293: I don't remember just what it was that Milton was doing. But I'll never forget my nephew's pronouncement that. Whatever it was. It was women's work. And somehow it was beneath the man's dignity to do it now and sat him down and gave him a lecture about the working man's work. But I don't think he ever forgot that lecture. Summarized the way we had led we've lived got a life. Ever since during the first year of our married life I guess I could have qualified as a feminist. I had a career in the marketplace. My husband did part of the house. A year later I have never received an offer of a one year appointment at the University of Wisconsin. I got a New York but it was not exciting. I hadn't finished it. And yet it never occurred to me. Or to him that I would stay on and finish my job and we would commute.
ellauri353.html on line 295: So I gave up my job and we moved when we got to this crime scene. I didn't inquire whether the university had a nepotism rule. As the University of Chicago did or we went. Later if the husband worked for the university his wife. Could not be employed there even as a janitor. This change however with women's lives. Today. If the university wishes to hire a qualified male. It has to find a job for his wife. At the best of my knowledge that's not work in reverse.
ellauri353.html on line 297: And I really have mixed feelings about either arrangement. so instead. I have is very happy to spend the school year doing some work on my dissertation. I got used to being a homemaker. I took some funky classes in pottery, (Sorry Milton I mean) ceramics. And I got pregnant at the the back end of school here we left university and headed for Amman or Milton spent the summer writing a book. Jointly with two other people. And I spent the summer being pregnant and I'm comfortable. But war was heating up and decided that once our baby arrived we would move. The washing. He would go to work probably at the Treasury Department. I hope to spend my time as a mother. Unfortunately that didn't work out. Our first pregnancy. My first experience at. Guarding a family came to a sad end when the baby was stillborn. So I went to work in watching them till I could get pregnant again. This time they were more fortunate. And once our daughter was born. I had no thought of going back to work. At least until my. Our children were grown. And as it turned out I never did go back as far as spam innocents are concerned. When I had the opportunity to do some work at home without leaving. So there.
ellauri353.html on line 299: But there weren't too many. I must confess that my experience combining life is a homemaker and an economist's was easier than it is for many women. I chose the right husband from the beginning. From the beginning we shared our interest in economics whether the news may call in the speech an article or a book. I was part of the activity in the sense that Milton always wanted me to read whatever he wrote. And he took my suggestion seriously. It gave me the feeling that I was practicing what I was trained for. But also that I was contributing to his career. It was in a sense our career. So when he was awarded the Nobel Prize it's received other many many many other net honors. And people always feel sorry for me and ask me how it feels to have him getting all the honors. My answer is always the same one. It is our honor I was part of that. When our children left for good. I became more active. With us and we go off for books. Where do I come out on a women's lib or feminist women have a real problem. But in my opinion the present solution is worse than the disease. The man. Or children. And those women who still believe that a mother's first job is to bring up her children. Women's lives. Made those women. Feel that is inferior to a paying job in the market. Therefore they must be and feared with the will to have a full time job outside. It is heightened competition between man and women. Husband and wife. So-called woman is problem. Has not. And I don't believe will solve the problem. Or a woman. There is a problem.
ellauri353.html on line 301: Because while children are growing up you have a pool of time God wants to kill bin Laden even less you have something to fall back on. There isn't much left. However I think that the green movement towards the computer and that is really going to solve the woman's problem. Because then women can. Will be able to stay at home and bring up their children. And at the same time not drop out of everything that they would go for and I think it's happening more and more women are staying home just take care of their tour. And at the same time. Are continue. Either their education or there are few that we think of when I am asked about. Or book in advance. When the list...
ellauri353.html on line 313: Elizabeth Hobbs Keckley (helmikuu 1818 – toukokuu 1907) oli afro-amerikkalainen ompelija, aktivisti ja kirjailija, joka asui Washington DC:ssä. Hiän oli Mary Todd Lincolnin henkilökohtainen treenari ja uskottu. Hiän kirjoitti omaelämäkerran.
ellauri353.html on line 317: Marraskuussa 1855 hiän osti itsensä ja poikansa vapaaxi St. Louisissa, Missourissa. Keckley muutti Washington DC:hen vuonna 1860. Hiän perusti ompeluyrityksen, johon kuului 20 ompelijaa. Rags to riches. Hiänen asiakkaitaan olivat eliittipoliitikkojen vaimot, mukaan lukien Varina Davis, Jefferson Davisin vaimo, ja Mary Anna Custis Lee, Robert E. Leen vaimo.
ellauri353.html on line 333: Jacob Weisberg's "The Bush Tragedy"
ellauri353.html on line 372: Moisey Volfovich Vinnitsky syntyi juutalaisen vaununrakentajan Meyer-Volf Mordkovich Vinnitskyn perheeseen, joidenkin stanitsa Goltassa (nykyisin osa Pervomaiskista) olevien tietojen mukaan. Vinnitsky oli noin 4-vuotias, kun hänen perheensä muutti Odesaan (Moldavanka). Muissa tiedoissa kerrotaan, että hän syntyi satamapalvelumiehen (bindyuzhnik) perheeseen osoitteessa 23 Hospital Street (nykyisin Bohdan Khmelnytsky Street) Odesassa (Moldavanka). Vinnitskyn äiti Doba Zelmanovna synnytti viisi poikaa ja tyttären. Syntyessään hän sai kaksoisnimen, Moisey-Jakov (Mooses-Jakob), samanlaisen kuin hänen isänsä. Koska tällainen kaksoisnimi oli epätavallinen venäläisessä kulttuurissa, Vinnitskyn toinen nimi kirjattiin joskus isän nimeksi - Moisey Yakovlevich.
ellauri353.html on line 496: Den lilla staden Berestrejko ligger där och stinker I väntan på bättre tider. Berestetjko (ukrainska: Берестечко uttal (info); polska: Beresteczko) är en stad i Volyn oblast i Ukraina. Staden ligger vid floden Styr. 1651 ägde slaget vid Berestetjko rum nära staden, som då var en del av Polsk-litauiska samväldet. Från 1795 fram till ryska revolutionen 1917 var staden en del av Ryssland, men tillföll därefter Polen. 1939 tillföll den Ukrainska sovjetrepubliken för att senare bli en del av det självständiga Ukraina 1991. Under andra världskriget ockuperades staden av Nazityskland som avrättade stadens judiska befolkning.
ellauri353.html on line 514: Earl oli suunnitellut opettavansa pojanpojalleen aristokraatiksi. Sen sijaan Cedric opettaa isoisälleen, että aristokraatin tulisi harjoittaa myötätuntoa hänestä riippuvaisia kohtaan. Earlista tulee mies, jonka Cedric aina viattomasti uskoi hänen olevan. Cedric tapaa onnellisesti äitinsä ja herra Hobbsin, joka päättää jäädä huolehtimaan Cedricistä.
ellauri353.html on line 541: Ofördärvade bredbenta flickor granskade nyktert och sakligt den döende semitens avtärda, fina och lockiga manlighet. Du har fördärvat hästen, din fyrögda torsk, sade skvadronchefen. Kasakat ei antaneet hevosvarkautta ilmaisexi nelisilmälle. Eikä Kobakaan.
ellauri353.html on line 574: Nero, Robespierre, Stalin, Saddam olivat terroristeja. Myra Williamsonin (2009) mukaan: "Terrorismin merkitys on kokenut muodonmuutoksen. Terrorivallan aikana hallinnon välineenä käytettiin hallitusta tai terrorismijärjestelmää, jota käytettiin hiljattain perustetun vallankumouksellisen valtion vihollisia vastaan. Nykyään termiä "terrorismi" käytetään yleisesti kuvaamaan terroritekoja, joita ei-valtiolliset tai alueelliset tahot tekevät valtiota vastaan." Terroristien yleinen piirre on jatkuva lapsuuden tottelemattomuus.
ellauri353.html on line 595: Klim ja "Koba" syyttivät heitä osallistumisesta "neuvostonvastaiseen trotskilaiseen sotilasjärjestöön", Neuvostoliiton sotilaallisen tappion suunnittelusta tulevassa sodassa, vakoilusta Saksan hyväksi, terrori-iskujen valmistelemisesta politbyroon jäseniä vastaan ja aikomuksesta järjestää sotilasvallankaappaus.
ellauri355.html on line 51: Lokakuu on ryssissä ollut vallankumouxellinen. In September and October 1993, a constitutional crisis arose in the Russian Federation from a conflict between President Boris Yeltsin and Russia's parliament. President Yeltsin performed a self-coup, dissolving parliament and instituting a presidential rule by decree system. The crisis ended with Yeltsin using military force to attack Moscow's House of Soviets and arrest the lawmakers. In Russia, the events are known as the October Coup (Russian: Октябрьский путч, romanized: Oktyabr'skiy putch) or Black October (Russian: Чëрный октябрь, romanized: Chyorniy Oktyabr').
ellauri355.html on line 102: Yazov spent 18 months in Matrosskaya Tishina, a prison in northern Moscow. According to the magazine Vlast No. 41(85) of 14 October 1991, he contacted the President from jail with a recorded video message, in which he repented and called himself "an old fool". Yazov denies ever doing that, or that under the influence of fatigue he succumbed to the persuasion of television reporters, and he also accepted the amnesty offered by Jelzin stating that he was not guilty. He was dismissed from military service by Presidential Order, and at his discharge, was awarded a ceremonial weapon to polish under his desk. He was also awarded an order of honor by the President of Russian Federation. Yazov later worked as a military adviser at the General Staff Academy. He died in 2020 in Moscow, after a prolonged illness.
ellauri355.html on line 104: Baklanov spent 18 months in Matrosskaya Tishina, and then accepted amnesty in 1994, stating that he was not guilty. He later worked as a director of Rosobshchemash.
ellauri355.html on line 227: Veriroiskeisia terveisiä taas anglosfääristä! Tällä kertaa ruumiita pilkkovat Britannian parhaat voimat. Herttaisten 60-luvun sarjojen aseettomat bobbyt kumipamppuineen ovat korvautuneet arpisilla julmailmeisillä NCA terroristijahtinaisilla jotka ei välitä tavallisista ruumiista vaan yxinomaan puntabiljonääreistä. Anglosfäärin tuloerot paistaa joka nurkasta. Mutta konnat ei loppupeleissä ole tietystikään anglosaxibiljönäärejä, vaan italian mafiosoja tai ilkeitä kiinalaisia viirusilmiä. Hyvixet ei enää ole lasilabroissan turvassa, vaan pahixet tulevat ihan silmille, häkkeröityvät kaikille digialustoille, pörräävät siiratiimin yllä drööneillä ja uhkailevat listiä hyvisten lähiomaiset. Puhasta klaanitouhua. Hyvixet ja pahixet on vaan 2 klaania, joita johtavat yhtä kasvottomat törkimöt. Eläinparat (rotat, siat) syövät hätäpäissään silvottuja ruumiita. Kenen mielestä tää on ihanaa? No jos oma elämä on ihan kuralla, ehkä tääkin stten vähän lohduttaa. Niinkuin lohduttavat sotkuiset tazkat tai seiniin yösydännä ruiskitut graffitit.
ellauri359.html on line 53: Grahame meni naimisiin Elspeth Thomsonin, Robert William Thomsonin tyttären kanssa vuonna 1899. Heillä oli yksi lapsi, Alastair (lempinimi "Hiiri"), joka syntyi sokeana toisesta silmästä ja kärsi terveydellisistä ongelmista koko lyhyen elämänsä ajan. Grahamen jäädessä eläkkeelle perhe palasi Cookhamiin, hänen lapsuudenkotiinsa, jossa he asuivat Mayfieldissä, nykyisessä Herries Preparatory Schoolissa. Siellä Grahame tuotti nukkumaanmenotarinoita, jotka hän kertoi Alastairille ja joista tuli The Wind in the Willows.
ellauri359.html on line 151: Distinguished lawyer, business leader and philanthropist David Rubenstein joined more than 90 Eisenhower Fellows from around the world as our featured speaker at a special dinner reception at the Masonic Temple on May 14. Mr. Rubenstein’s extraordinary life’s journey took him from humble working-class beginnings in Baltimore to become co-founder and co-chairman of the Carlyle Group, a global private equity investment firm based in Washington, D.C. In gratitude for his illustrious business career, Mr. Rubenstein has become one of the world’s most prominent philanthropists, donating much of his fortune to worthy charitable causes.
ellauri359.html on line 153: Yet another industrialistien sekulaarinen Amerikka-missio. In 2010, Eisenhower Fellowships held its first Women's Leadership Program. The governing body of the organization is the Board of Trustees, a group of more than seventy year old men in business and public affairs currently chaired by Dr. Robert M. Gates. Prior chairs include General Colin L. Powell, U.S. (retired), Dr. Henry Kissinger, President George H.W. Bush, and President Gerald Ford. Eisenhower Fellowships is headquartered in Philadelphia, Pennsylvania.
ellauri359.html on line 177: object_2-detail.jpg/172px-Blake_after_John_Gabriel_Stedman_Narrative_of_a_Five_Years_copy_2_object_2-detail.jpg" />
ellauri359.html on line 179: object_8.jpg/800px-Blake_after_John_Gabriel_Stedman_Narrative_of_a_Five_Years_copy_2_object_8.jpg" />
ellauri359.html on line 191: Blaken kamuja olivat varhainen feministi Mary Wollstonecraft ja englantilais-amerikkalainen vallankumouksellinen Thomas Paine, joista on jo kokonainen albumi. Yhdessä William Wordsworthin ja Percyn vaimokkeiden isän William Godwinin kanssa Blake toivoi suuria Ranskan ja Amerikan vallankumouksista ja käytti Fryygianlakkia solidaarisuuden vuoksi Ranskan vallankumouksellisille, mutta oli epätoivoinen Robespierren nousun ja terroristien vallan johdosta Ranskassa.
ellauri359.html on line 217: Siihen suuntaan kyllä viittaa se, että Blakella oli valtava vaikutus 1950-luvun beat-runoilijoihin ja 1960-luvun vastakulttuuriin, ja hänet mainitsevat usein sellaiset merkittävät hahmot kuin beat-runoilija Allen Ginsberg, lauluntekijät Bob Dylan, Jim Morrison, Van Morrison, ja englantilainen kirjailija Aldous Huxley. Myös suurin osa Philip Pullmanin fantasiatrilogian His Dark Materials keskeisistä ajatuksista juontaa juurensa Blaken The Marriage of Heaven and Hell -elokuvan maailmaan.
ellauri360.html on line 42: Viime vuonna Marienbadissa (leffa) oli hervotonta haahuilua. Onkohan Robbe Grilletin toinen suorite, romsku Labyrintti samaa kaliiperia?
ellauri360.html on line 51: obbe-Grillet Alain">Alain Robbe-Grillet syntyi vuonna 1922 Saint-Pierre-Quilbignonissa, joka on nykyään osa Brestiä. Hänen isänsä oli insinööri, joka omisti pienen tehtaan. Hänen vanhempansa olivat ateisteja ja äärioikeiston kannattajia. Hän opiskeli Institut National d'Agronomie -koulussa, mutta hänen opinnot keskeytettiin, kun hänet värvättiin väkisin Saksan miehityksen alla sorviksi saksalaiselle tankkitehtaalle. Sodan jälkeen hän työskenteli agronomina, erikoisalana trooppisten hedelmien viljely (kuten Don Jaimella, jonka lukija tuntee toisellakin nimellä, eli Zorron nimellä), mukaan lukien loitsut ulkomailla. Hän kuitenkin sairastui eikä palannut ammattiinsa, vaan aloitti kokopäiväisen kirjoittamisen. Vuonna 1957 hän meni naimisiin Catherine Rastakianin kanssa , näyttelijän, joka on myös julkaissut romaaneja. Hän kirjoitti ensimmäisen romaaninsa vuonna 1948, mutta se julkaistiin vasta vuonna 1978. Vuonna 1951 hänen ensimmäinen julkaistu romaaninsa – Les Gommes (Pyyhekumit) – voitti palkinnon ja hän pystyi tekemään uran kirjailijana.
ellauri360.html on line 53: Hänet tunnetaan nykyään parhaiten yhtenä suurimmista kirjailijoista. Hänen maneerinsa on 'esineellinen.' Robbe-Grillet ei ollut vain tämäntyyppisten romaanien kirjoittaja, vaan myös kirjoitti siitä ja toimi Editions de Minuitin toimituksellisena johtajana, kustantajan, joka julkaisi Robbe-Grillet'n ja monia muita nouveau romaanikirjailijoita. Nouveau Romanin perusperiaatteena oli, että juoni, luonne ja kerronta olivat vanhanaikaisia. Ensimmäiseksi tuli perinteinen kertojan rooli, jossa kirjailija puuttui juoniin, jos se katsottiin tarpeelliseksi. Perinteisiä hahmoja kyseenalaistettiin myös asioihin keskittyen, mikä loi heidän mukaansa uutta realismia. Hahmot ilmaantuessaan esiintyivät usein tietoisuuden virroina. Sartren, Camuksen ja muiden ranskalaisten kirjoittajien poliittinen sitoutuminen hylättiin.
ellauri360.html on line 55: Robbe-Grillet on pysynyt yhteydessä nouveau romaniin koko uransa ajan. Hän on myös käsikirjoittanut ja ohjannut useita elokuvia. Hän kirjoitti käsikirjoituksen Alain Resnais'lle L' année dernière à Marienbad (Viime vuosi Marienbadissa) , jota nykyään yleisesti pidetään yhtenä parhaista sodanjälkeisistä ranskalaisista elokuvista. Hän kuoli vuonna 2008. Vähän nuorempana kuin ikätoverinsa Pirkko Hiekkala.
ellauri360.html on line 57: Tarina on tietysti suhteellisen yksinkertainen. Tuntematon sotilas vaeltelee ympäri kaupunkia sotilaallisen tappion jälkeen talven keskellä ja etsii miestä, jolle hän luovuttaa kaatuneen toverin henkilökohtaiset tavarat. Vihollinen saapuu kaupunkiin ja paeta yrittävä sotilas haavoittuu. Hän onnistuu pääsemään naisen asuntoon, jonka aviomies taistelee sodassa, missä hän lopulta kuolee. Voimme nähdä, että tämä ainakin osittain tulee Robbe-Grilletin omista kokemuksista sodassa ja Kafkan vaikutus on myös vahva. Mutta tämä ei ole kafkamainen romaani eikä omaelämäkerrallinen romaani. Vaikka sotilaalla on sokkeloiden pelko, kaupungissa eksyminen, kafkamainen tunne eksymisestä, muttei tiedä missä tai miksi on eksynyt, tämä ei ole romaanin avain. Mitä Robbe-Grillet tekee, kuten hän on tehnyt aikaisemmissa romaaneissaan, keskittyy asioihin, toimiin jne., joilla on hänen mielestään oma merkityksensä. Tietenkin tämän tekeminen tällä tavalla häiritsee meitä, sillä odotamme tavanomaista romaania ja asiat, vaikka ne näyttävätkin normaaleilta, saavat hieman epätavallisen konnotaation vain siksi, että hän on keskittynyt niihin tässä hieman epänormaalilla (kirjallisista odotuksistamme poikkeavalla) tavalla. Siten ahdistuneisuuden tunne, sellainen kuin saamme Kafka-romaanissa, lisääntyy täällä, vaikkakin eri tavalla. Ja kuten Kafkan kohdalla, olemme epävarmoja siitä, mitä tapahtui, paitsi että sotilas kuoli. Kai.
ellauri360.html on line 63: Perinteiset kirjallisuuden analyysin termit, kuten "juoni" ja "hahmo", eivät sovellu mukavasti Alain Robbe-Grilletille myönnettävään uuteen romaaniin. Pour un nouveau roman (1963; Uudelle romaanille , 1965) esseesarjassa Robbe-Grillet kuvailee sellaisia termejä kuin "useita vanhentuneita käsitteitä": Olemme niin tottuneet keskusteluun "luonteesta", "ilmapiiristä". ”, "muoto" ja "sisältö", "viestin" ja "kerronnan kyvyt" ja "todelliset kirjailijat", että se vaatii ponnisteluja vapautua tästä hämähäkinverkosta ja ymmärtää, että se edustaa ajatusta romaanista (valmis -tehty idea, jonka kaikki myöntävät ilman argumentteja, siis kuollut idea), eikä ollenkaan se...romaanin "luonne", johon meidän pitäisi uskoa.
ellauri360.html on line 65: Labyrinthissa, Robbe-Grilletin neljäs romaani, on hänen täydellisin esimerkki teorioista, joita hän onnistui havainnollistamaan aikaisemmissa romaaneissaan vain osittain. Selvittäessään labyrinttimaisesti kiemurtelevia tapahtumia lukija ymmärtää, että ranskalaisen kaupungin kaduilla vaeltelee nuori sotilas, joka haluaa toimittaa kenkälaatikon muotoisen paketin toisen sairaalassa kuolleen sotilaan perheelle. Pakkauksen sisältö, lukijaa kiinnostava mysteeri, osoittautuu merkityksettömiksi henkilökohtaisiksi omaisuuksiksi, ei pommiksi tai romaanin juonen ehdottamixi salaisixi papereixi.
ellauri360.html on line 69: Paizi romaani ei koskaan vetäydy sellaisten suurten ranskalaisten kirjailijoiden kuin Honore de Balzacin ja Gustave Flaubertin perinteisiin muotoihin. Sen sijaan se pysyy kuvailevassa tilassa, vailla "merkitystä" tai "merkitystä" ja kieltäytyy kaikista yrityksistä sijoittaa symbolisten tai yleisesti ymmärrettyjen kuvien verkko objektiivisten kuvausten päälle.
ellauri360.html on line 70: Hyvä Robbe! Pidän grillatusta kalasta. Mutta että sadisti !
ellauri360.html on line 72: Vanity Fair visits Robbe-Grillet, sadomasochistic author and widow of novelist (and accomplished sadist) Alain Robbe-Grillet, at the 17th-century château in Normandy where she resides with Beverly Charpentier, the 51-year-old South African woman who is her submissive companion. Robbe grillet sadist - Robbe grillasi sadistia.
ellauri360.html on line 74: “A Sentimental Novel,” the final published work of the novelist and theorist Alain Robbe-Grillet, appeared in France four months before his death, in 2008, and in English translation last spring. The content of the novel contributed to the lag in its translation: “A Sentimental Novel” (reviewed this summer in Briefly Noted) is a compendium of Robbe-Grillet’s sadistic fantasies, which, he said, he had catalogued since adolescence. The work consists of two hundred and thirty-nine numbered paragraphs that form a sort of sadist’s rhapsody about the sexual initiation of a fourteen-year-old girl, Gigi. Gigi’s travails are recounted in exacting detail, against a lushly imagined mise-en-scène, with elaborate furnishings, torture devices, and a proliferation of young companions. Okei siis Robbe liittyy pitkään jonoon kynäilijäpedofiilejä. Ei siinä mitään, kukapa ei pitäisi latuskarintaisista teinitytöistä. Mutta pakkoko niitä on silleen rääkätä?
ellauri360.html on line 101: Roberto Bolaño : Los Detectives Salvajes (The Savage Detectives)
ellauri360.html on line 139: Robert Coover : Julkinen palava
ellauri360.html on line 205: Jaroslav Hašek : Osudy Dobrého Vojáka švejka Za Svetové Valky (The Good Soldier Schweik)
ellauri360.html on line 263: Robert Musil : Der Mann ohne Eigenschaften (Mies ilman ominaisuuksia)
ellauri360.html on line 295: Ernesto Sabato : Sobre heroes y tumbas (Sankareista ja haudoista )
ellauri360.html on line 436: Mitä tulee käsikirjoituksiin, jotka poltettiin Konstantinuksen käskystä, ei todellakaan ole mainintaa sellaisesta tosiasiassa tapahtuneesta Konstantinuksen käskystä tai Nikean kirkolliskokouksessa. Anaalipuolueen asiakirja, jossa väitettiin Kristus olevan luotu olento, hylättiin sen voimakkaan vastustuksen vuoksi ja repelöitiin silpuiksi kaikkien neuvostossa läsnä olevien silmissä. Konstantinuksella ja Nikean kirkolliskokouksella ei ollut käytännössä mitään tekemistä kaanonin muodostamisen kanssa. Siitä ei edes keskusteltu Nizzassa. Neuvosto, joka teki kiistattoman päätöksen kaanonista, pidettiin Carthagessa vuonna 397, kuusikymmentä vuotta Konstantinuksen kuoleman jälkeen. Kuitenkin kauan ennen Konstantinusta kaikki kristityt tunnustivat 21 kirjaa (4 evankeliumia, Apostolien teot, 13 Paavali, 1. Pietari, 1. Johannes, Ilmestyskirja). Siellä oli 10 kiistanalaista kirjaa (Heprealaiskirje, Jaakob, 2. Pietari, 2-3 Johannes, Juudas, Ps-Barnabas, Hermas, Didache, Heprealaiskirje) ja useita, joita useimmat pidettiin harhaoppisina – Pietarin, Tuomaan, Mattaiaan evankeliumit, Apostolien teot. Andrew, John jne.
ellauri360.html on line 443: What is the “New Christianity”? AT THE START OF the twentieth century, the map of global Christianity that charismatic leaders D. L. Moody or Vladimir Lenin might have known had been completely reshaped. In 1900, only 10 percent of the world’s Christians lived in the continents of the south and east, but a century later at least 70 percent of the world’s Christians lived there. More Christians worshiped in Anglican churches in Nigeria each week than in all the Episcopal and Anglican churches of Britain, Europe, and North America combined. There were ten times more Assembly of God members in Latin America than in the United States. There were more Baptists in Congo than in Great Britain. And there were more people in church every Sunday in communist China than in all of Western Europe or in North America. Philip Jenkins, Distinguished Professor of History at Baylor University, said at the time that religion in the new century even showed signs of replacing ideology as the prime animating force in human affairs. “If we look beyond the liberal West,” he wrote in The Atlantic Monthly, we see that another Christian revolution... is already in progress.
ellauri360.html on line 445: Worldwide, Christianity is actually moving toward supernaturalism and [what he called] neo-orthodoxy, and in many ways toward the ancient world view expressed in the New Testament: a vision of Jesus as the embodiment of divine power, who overcomes the evil forces that inflict calamity and sickness upon the human race. Jenkins spoke especially of “the Global South” or those areas of the earth that Westerners once thought of as the Third World, and he argued that contemporary Christianity had shifted south and the earth’s preponderant weight appeared to be “pear-shaped.” In this south or Third World, Jenkins wrote, we find huge and growing Christian populations: at the dawning of the twenty-first century, 480 million in Latin America, 360 million in Africa, and 313 million in Asia, compared with 260 million in North America. The shift, he said, portended trouble for the traditional cultural empire of the North Atlantic, the liberal religious establishment. Perhaps the broadest public hint, Jenkins wrote, was provided by the 1998 Lambeth Conference, where southern Christians used their numerical clout to promote opinions thoroughly unfashionable in the North Atlantic (or the West). “Queen Victoria’s ex-empire,” said Jenkins, “from southern Africa to Singapore struck back.”
ellauri360.html on line 468: Voittosanoma Wilholle! The unmistakable first observation about the churches below the equator is that they are charismatic. “The gifts” play a prominent role in public worship and private devotion. Grasping the history of this movement will prepare the reader for encountering the Global South. Several movements prepare and anticipate the emergence of contemporary Pentecostalism. The Methodist Holiness movements were perfectly suited for the North American frontier with an egalitarian character that could cross economic, racial, and gender barriers. Culminating 150 years of Holiness theology, by 1900 Pentecostals embraced and amended a Holiness tradition incorporating several emphases. The “mixed blessing” approach acknowledged the first blessing of conversion and a second blessing whereby the believers were stirred and moved to sanctification or holiness (the emphasis that evolved from Wesley).
ellauri360.html on line 470: Additionally, they acknowledged a third blessing, which was Spirit baptism. Spirit baptism included a special empowerment for service. (Empowerment being a buzzword of the Keswick Movement, consult album 92. Sieltäkö naikkoset sen nappasivat?) Pentecostals also affirmed that the Spirit baptism was accompanied by speaking in tongues. The Spirit’s outpouring was tied to the last days, in the imagination of many. Prophecy conferences and the reemergence of pre-millennialism (that Christ would return to establish a thousand-year reign) added to the sense of expectation. Numerous healing ministries also contributed to the picture of God’s preparing his people for ministry Also, internationally noted revivals in India, Wales, and Korea gave encouragement to the Pentecostal movement. The Welsh revival witnessed a presence and power of the Holy Spirit. Its spokesman, Evan Roberts, taught that such an experience of the Holy Spirit was a necessary condition to revival. The “North Korean Pentecost” set the stage for many enduring practices of the Korean church to this day, such as early morning prayer meetings and the practice of simultaneous blabber.
ellauri360.html on line 476: The story of the emergence and mission of the pentecostal and charismatic movements that follow is arguably the most important story of the twentieth century for understanding Christianity today. Measuring the expansion and growth of the Pentecostal denominations is only a fraction of the story because charismatic and Pentecostal influences are the primary contributors to nondenominationalism. Even more impressively, charismatic theology and practice now characterize many believers in the mainline denominations and Catholic life. American students of the movement observe three recent movements of the Spirit. The first wave refers to the outpouring of the Spirit at Azusa and the emergence of the major Pentecostal denominations that followed. American students of the movement observe three recent movements of the Spirit. The first wave refers to the outpouring of the Spirit at Azusa and the emergence of the major Pentecostal denominations that followed. The second wave denotes a sweeping encounter and embrace of charismatic life. spilling over into mainline Protestant denominations and Catholicism in the 1960s and early 1970s. The third wave saw the embrace of signs and wonders by conservatives; it began in the 1980s at Fuller Seminary in California around the teaching and ministry of John Wimber. The Vineyard network of churches is a lasting sign of this movement that saw many evangelicals swept into charismatic experience.
ellauri360.html on line 478: Some historians place the commonly told story of the rise of Pentecostalism within larger frameworks. Azusa may be part of an international and multicultural outpouring of the Spirit; Azusa might be the Jerusalem of the new Pentecost or one of many Pentecosts occurring around the globe at about the same time. It may be the predominant expression of a more encompassing age of Spirit-centered renewal that includes the contemplative streams, as expressed in Henri Nouwen and Richard Foster. It may also be seen as part of a larger scenario, the steady decline of liberalism that was being replaced by more conservative or evangelical upsurges. While each of these has merit and interest, the scope of this movement seems to eclipse most other factors.
ellauri360.html on line 480: It is easy to understand scholars slightly overemphasizing when they claim that the global expansion is actually the Pentecostal expansion. Missionaries are frequently criticized as serving both Christ and commerce. They are pictured as agents of colonial expansion and unable to distinguish between the gospel message and their own cultural preferences. Kenyan Jomo Kenyatta famously captures this critical perspective: “When the missionaries came to Africa they had the Bible and we had the land. They said ‘Let us pray.’ We closed our eyes. When we opened them we had the Bible and they had the land.”
ellauri360.html on line 482: Recent students of missionary endeavors give missionaries a better name (i.e. leech), noting that they often advocate justice and independence. Let us pray. When we opened them they had our money and we had independence, electronic junk and baleloads of sweaty t-shirts. That's a broader understanding of America’s influence upon the expansion of Christianity in the Global South. We need to shift our focus from the question of what missionaries did and address what version of Christianity they modeled before the Global South believers. Christianity was brought to America by European Christians; it is the product of missions itself.
ellauri360.html on line 488: Anabaptists argued that an informal Christendom exists in America. Even though no particular brand of Christianity or Church is named by the government of the United States (disestablishment), Christians still see their nation as Christian in some sense and see the church as obligated to serve the state, much like a chaplain. American Christians see themselves between the extreme of Anabaptist independence and full-blown Christendom as modeled in Europe. The shift away from the Christendom model, however subtle, is crucial to understanding American Christianity. In the end, it is the voluntary, independent, and businesslike disposition of Western missionaries that left the lasting mark upon the churches of the Global South. Translation holds ample opportunity for Western missionaries to import their own cultural bias. The effect of translation was not only cultural manipulation, but a boost for wearing US made t-shirts, shorts and baseball caps to hide the yummy naked breasts.
ellauri360.html on line 495: Tämä jyrkän näköinen John Nelson Darby (1800-1882) oli dispensationalismin perustaja. in October 1827, he fell from a horse and was seriously injured. Siitä lähtien se alkoi puhella pöpejä.
ellauri360.html on line 499: Worldview and metaphysics (a term you can dynamically translate with the question, “What else is real?”) are crucial. General observations about philosophical issues are dangerous, but it is fair to observe that Christians in the Global South see the world around them as manifesting a vivid interaction between what we may call a spiritual (nonmaterial) realm and a material (concretely physical) realm. Westerners typically hold that a mastery over the material realm (perhaps through science) alters or even negates the need for the spiritual realm. Tiede on ihmeitä ihmeellisempää ja toimii luotettavammin. A thing has either a natural or a supernatural cause. Which one it is, makes no more sense to ask than whether you take the bus or your lunch to school. In such a muted theism called deism, God is offstage and barely makes appearances; demons, spirits, and angels are downplayed. For most Western believers, only a modest market exists for the spiritual. For the Global South, the physical and spiritual worlds interact. In such a world, demons or spirits may influence a person’s mood or well-being. Both the spiritual and material realms are firmly in mind. They enter the text of Scripture with less hindrance. They just supplement one magic with another.
ellauri360.html on line 501: The church of the Global South is routinely situated in poverty. The designation Third World communicates this observation. It is fair to note that not all people in the Global South are poor, the elite is filthy rich, but struggle with social injustice is the unavoidable context and circumstance of much of the Global South. The sad fact is that rich prople need salvation less. Liberal theologians claim that Jesus sought liberty from oppressive economic systems. That is just stupid communist propaganda put in Jesus' mouth by Dr. Luke. Just concentrate upon the good news of the buying power of Jesus. These two, no three, theories are dominant among the Western church: (1) Jesus bears our individual penalty or debt as sinners. (2) Jesus fixes our incapacity to receive and share love. (3) in the Russian Church, Jesus mends the bondage we experience, last but not least that nasty customer, death. In contrast, people in the Global South do not need an act of the imagination to picture Jesus' enemies. His job is to beat them.
ellauri360.html on line 503: American individualism is silly. The only thing individual about anyone is the space they occupy. All else is copied by millions. Vibrant singing is a whole-body exercise for many believers in the Global South. Intercessory prayer composes a major element in worship; separate seasons of prayer can last for hours. Cellphones do the same job in the west. In many cases, the ability of the preacher to heal relatively cheaply is the primary cause of church growth. Kiinalainen "takaisin Israeliin" eli "viele vehen lännemmäxi" herätysliike on herättänyt itänaapurissa närkästystä.
ellauri360.html on line 505: Israelin lisääntyvä puolustusyhteistyö Kiinan kanssa on herättänyt huolta länsimaissa, erityisesti Yhdysvalloissa, joka on Israelin suurin ulkomainen puolustustarvikkeiden toimittaja. Kiina oli 23. heinäkuuta 2014 niiden 29 maan joukossa, jotka äänestivät YK:n ihmisoikeusneuvoston Israelin Operation Protective Edge -operaation aikana tekemien sotarikosten tutkinnan puolesta, ja Yhdysvallat oli ainoa eri mieltä oleva valtio. Toukokuussa 2021 Israelin suurlähetystö Pekingissä syytti Kiinan valtion tiedotusvälinettä China Global Television Networkia "räikeästä antisemitismistä ", kun isäntä Zheng Junfeng lähetti osan, jossa syytettiin Yhdysvaltain Israel-politiikkaa varakkaiden juutalaisten vaikutuksesta Israelin ja Palestiinan kriisin aikana 2021. Kiinalaiset toimittajat ovat joulukuusta 2023 lähtien luoneet byrokraattisia esteitä Israelin teknologiatehtaille ja viivästyttäneet elektronisten komponenttien toimituksia Israeliin siviili- ja sotilaskäyttöön.
ellauri362.html on line 87: Tarina alkaa siitä, että Darcyn ja Bingleyn matkaseurue (Bingley, hänen sisarensa Caroline ja hänen toinen sisarensa sekä hänen miehensä herra ja rouva Hurst) saapuvat Meryton Assemblyyn maalaistaloille. Bingley, uusi yhteisössä, on ulospäin suuntautunut henkilö ilman mitään teeskentelyä, ja siksi hän odottaa innolla hauskaa. Sitä vastoin Darcy on melko pidättyväinen ja jäykästi muodollinen, ja hän odottaa, että maalaisjuhlien iloinen epämuodollisuus huonosti kasvatettujen vieraiden kesken = työläs, epämiellyttävä ilta. Caroline ja Hurstit ovat elitistisiä snobeja ja odottavat innolla kyllästyvänsä merkityksettömiin paikallisiin.
ellauri362.html on line 122: Aamulla sen jälkeen, kun Elizabeth oli hylännyt kätensä, Darcy antaa Elizabethille pitkän kirjeen, jossa hän yrittää selittää toimiaan Bingleyä ja Wickhamia kohtaan, joista jälkimmäistä hän pitää paljon vakavampana. Darcyn mukaan hänen toimintansa Bingleyä kohtaan tehtiin parhaalla aikomuksella suojella ystäväänsä harkitsemattomalta käytökseltä. Se oli tuomio. Sitä vastoin Elizabethin tiedot Wickhamista ovat täysin ja objektiivisesti vääriä, ja jokainen, joka on kiinnostunut tietämään totuuden, voi helposti tarkistaa tämän. Darcy lähtee Rosings Parkista kirjeen jälkeisenä päivänä puhumatta Elizabethille, ja Elizabeth lähtee muutamaa päivää myöhemmin odottamatta näkevänsä toisiaan enää.
ellauri362.html on line 189: Herra Glowryn poika Scythrop on toipumassa huonosti päättyneestä rakkaussuhteesta. Epäonnistuneena kirjailijana hän vetäytyy usein omaan asuntoonsa torniin opiskelemaan. Kun hän jättää heidät, hänen huomionsa häiritsee flirttaileva Marionetta, joka puhaltaa kuumaa ja kylmää hänen kiintymyksiinsä. Lisää komplikaatioita syntyy, kun Celinda Toobad, joka pakenee pakkokihlausta tuntemattoman kosijan luo, vetoaa Scythropiin saadakseen suojaa ja tämä piilottaa hänet salaiseen huoneeseen. Muutos Scythropin käytöksessä saa Marionettan uhkaamaan jättää hänet ikuisesti, ja hänen on myönnettävä itselleen, että hän on rakastunut molempiin naisiin eikä voi valita heidän välillään enempää kuin Buridanin aasi.
ellauri362.html on line 193: Scythropin salaisuus paljastuu, kun herra Glowry kohtaa poikansa tornissaan ja kysyy, mitkä ovat hänen aikomuksensa Marionettaa kohtaan, "jota tunnustat rakastavanne". Tämän kuultuaan neiti Toobad (joka on käyttänyt itsestään Stellan nimeä) tulee ulos piilokammiosta ja vaatii selitystä. Seuraavan riidan aikana herra Toobad tunnistaa paenneen tyttärensä, jonka hän oli todella tarkoittanut Scythropille koko ajan. Mutta molemmat naiset luopuvat nyt Scythropista ja lähtevät luostarista päättäen olla katsomatta häntä enää koskaan.
ellauri362.html on line 199: Peacockin versio Shelleyn elämästä perustuu suurelta osin henkilökohtaiseen tietoon, ja useimmat tutkijat pitävät sitä objektiivisena, mutta silti varovaisena Shelleyn irrationaalisempien tekojen ja vainoharhaisten ideoiden käsittelyssä. Häntä vaivasi viimeisinä vuosinaan suolistosairaus.
ellauri362.html on line 389: Hän väitti, että hänellä oli hermoston häiriö , jonka hän oli vakuuttunut saaneen liikkeelle erilaisia objektiivisesti annettuja yliluonnollisia prosesseja, jotka liittyvät hänen omiin ja toisten ihmisten, jopa jumalallisiin hermoihin, joihin Schreber uskoi lujasti ja jonka vuoksi hänestä oli tullut uusi universumin keskus, mutta ei mielisairas. Tämän väitteen perusteella, jonka mukaan hän oli vain jumalallisten, yliluonnollisten ihmeiden uhri , jotka olivat paljastaneet hänelle uuden, epäsäännöllisen maailmanjärjestyksen, mutta muuten täysin mielenterveyden hallussa, Schreber nosti oikeudenkäynnin pian vuosisadan vaihteen jälkeen hänen työkyvyttömyyttään vastaan, joka tapahtui hänen sairaalassa olonsa aikana. Lopulta hän voitti (vaikka Dresdenin kuninkaallinen aluetuomioistuin totesi, että hänellä oli edelleen mielisairaus, mutta katsoi, ettei se ollut enää vaarallinen hänelle tai muille), minkä jälkeen hänet vapautettiin joulukuuta 1902 ja päästettiin jälleen tuomarixi. No ei sentään, läppä läppä.
ellauri362.html on line 416: Elias Canettin teoksen Mass and Power -osiossa Domination and Paranoia Muistelmat edustavat perusteellisinta valta-aiheeseen liittyvää asiakirjaa. Elias Canetti (25. heinäkuuta 1905 Rustšuk, Bulgaria – 14. elokuuta 1994 Zürich, Sveitsi) oli bulgarialaissyntyinen brittiläinen Nobel-kirjailija, joka kirjoitti saksaksi. Hänen pääteoksenaan pidetään romaania Sokeat, vaikka oikeasti se lienee saanut 1981 dynyprenikan lähinnä tosta antinazismista. Canettin suku oli Espanjan sefardijuutalaisia, jotka olivat paenneet Iberian niemimaalta vuonna 1492 juutalaisvainoja. Perheen alkuperäinen nimi oli Cañete, ja se muutettiin Canettiksi.
ellauri362.html on line 767: Näyte Althusserin aivopökäleistä: "Näkö ei ole enää yksittäisen subjektin tosiasia, jolla on 'näkemisen' kyky, jota hän harjoittaisi joko huomioiessaan tai häiriötekijänä; näkymä on tosiasia sen rakenteellisista ehdoista, näkemys on immanentti suhde heijastuksen kenttään problematiikkaan sen esineisiin ja sen ongelmiin."
ellauri362.html on line 780: Tämän ajatuksen kehittämiseksi Althusser väittää, että Marxin, Demokritoksen, Epikuroksen, Lucretiuksen, Machiavellin, Spinozan, Hobbesin, Rousseaun, Montesquieun, Heideggerin ja Derridan esittämä "satunnaisen materialismin" maanalainen filosofinen virtaus, jota tuskin tunnistetaan, on olemassa.
ellauri364.html on line 98: Kynäilijöiden sairaskertomuxet eli patografiat ovat herättäneet paljon pahaa verta, varsinkin eräiden kirjallisuushistorioitsijoiden keskuudessa, kun on ollut kysymys runoilijoista. On puhuttu psykologisista kamaripalvelijoista yms. Mitään objektiivista, asian luonteen mukaista muistutusta aihetta vastaan ei ole kuitenkaan voitu esittää.
ellauri364.html on line 111: Psykologian, psykiatrian, lääketieteen ja teologian tutkijat ovat tehneet perusteellisia ponnisteluja valottaakseen suuren tanskalaisen filosofin Søren Kierkegaardin (1813–55) vaikeaselkoista patografiaa. Tässä "kaksisatavuotisjuhlassa" olevassa artikkelissa tarkastellaan hänen tärkeimpiä patografisia diagnoosejaan mahdollisesta maanis-depressiivisestä [kaksisuuntaisesta] sairaudesta, epilepsiasta, monimutkaisista osittaisista kohtaushäiriöistä, Landry-Guillain-Barrén akuutista nousevasta halvauksesta, akuutista ajoittaisesta porfyriasta mahdollisine psykiatrisine ilmenemisineen aina kyttyrään ja syfilidofobiaan.
ellauri364.html on line 249: Hermostuneiden lasten käsittely on laaja ongelma. Luonteenvikoja on jo aivan pikkulapsilla. Pieneen vauvaan tepsii lavemangi (Olavi). Joskus voi probleemalapsikin osoittaa aivan hämmästyttävää mielenlujuutta, esim. melkein stoalaista kykyä sietää kipua. Suurinta levottomuutta herättävät sellaiset heikkoudet, jotka koskevat luonnetta ja jotka lapsilla useimmiten ilmenevät epärehellisyytenä. Laiskottelu ja muu tottelemattomuus eivät sinänsä ole niin vaarallisia, mutta keksityt tekosyyt ja selitykset tekevät nämä piirteet kovin ikäviksi. Ja kuitenkin on itsepäinen, järkevä uhma ilman pienintäkään kaunisteluviettiä oikeastaan vieläkin ikävämpää! Lapsi on lähempänä omaa luontoaan, jos hän väittää olevansa syytön. Lapsuusvuosien ylistetty mielikuvitus ilmenee etenkin toiveajatteluna, vaikeutena erottaa valhe totuudesta. Kaikkein eniten vanhemmat kauhistuvat, kun epärehellisyys tulee ilmi näpistelynä (Riitta). Nykyään kuitenkin tiedetään, ettei lapsen epäluotettavuuden eikä pikkuvalheiden tarvitse herättää sen suurempaa pelkoa. Useimmat pikku syntiset - ja niitä on paljon! - kasvavat täysin hyviksi yhteiskunnan jäseniksi, vaikkapa lihavixi kääntäjixi. Useimmat aikuiset eivät nimittäin myöskään ole niin kovin kykeneviä vastustamaan kiusauksia. He pystyvät vain hiukan paremmin arvostelemaan päämäärää, keinoja ja tilannetta. Ei tosin voida kieltää, että myös omatunto, eli pelisilmä, sanan varsinaisessa ja kunnioitettavassa merkityksessä, kehittyy meissä vähitellen kasvuvuosina. Ensimmäisiä spontaanisia eetillisiä tunteita näyttää olevan toveruus ja sen velvoitukset, jotka kehittyvät myöhemmällä lapsuuden iällä pelkän totunnaisen kuuliaisuu- den ja rangaistuksenpelon kauden jälkeen. Klaaniajattelu kehittyy, tit for tat, viranomaisille ei vasikoida.
ellauri364.html on line 288: Esim Viivi Pumpanen joutuu myymään unelmakotinsa ostohinnalla. Jääkiekkoilijamies on lähtenyt pelaamaan Saxassa. Robert Heleniuksen auto on nähty Viivin pihalla.
ellauri364.html on line 550: In 1986, the Christic Institute filed a $24 million civil suit on behalf of journalists Tony Avirgan and Martha Honey stating that various individuals were part of a conspiracy responsible for the La Penca bombing that injured Avirgan. The suit charged the defendants with illegally participating in assassinations, as well as arms and drug trafficking. Among the 30 defendants named were Iran–Contra figures John K. Singlaub, Richard V. Secord, Albert Hakim, and Robert W. Owen; Central Intelligence Agency officials Thomas Clines and Theodore Shackley; Contra leader Adolfo Calero; Medellin cartel leaders Pablo Escobar Gaviria and Jorge Ochoa Vasquez; Costa Rican rancher John Hull; and former mercenary Sam N. Hall.
ellauri364.html on line 579: Aihetta koskevasta perustutkimuksestaan Diener sai lempinimen Dr. Happiness. Tutkijoita, joiden kanssa hän on työskennellyt, ovat E. Saarisen sielunkumppani Daniel Kahneman ja Martin "kukoistus" Seligman. He held Smiley's chair as Joseph R. Smiley, Distinguished Professor of Psychology at the University of Illinois sat on it :). Diener's wife Carol is a psychologist and attorney. His daughters Marissa and Mary Beth are psychologists, as is his son, Robert.
ellauri365.html on line 41: Ar bomm gallek « feuille de rose » zo un droienn boblek da lavarout anulingus, pa weler ar fraezh evel ur rozenn, « rozenn an avelioù », a zo rod an avelioù e brezhoneg.
ellauri365.html on line 49: Maupassant [måpasa], Henry René Albert Guy de, fransk författare, f. 5 aug. 1850 på slottet Miromesnil i Normandie, d. 6 juli 1893 Auteuil, var ättling af en gammal lothringsk adels- familj; modern var sy- ster till skalden Alfred de Poittevin. Föräld- rarna skildes tidigt, och den intelligenta och litterärt intresse- rade modern, en barn- domsväninna till Gu- stave Flaubert, ledde sonens uppfostran. Hans barndom förflöt vid Normandies kust, där M. insöp sin kärlek till naturen och lärde kän- na dessa normandiska typer, som han sedan så gärna skildrade. Adertonårig inträdde han 1868 i Marinministeriet, men öfvergick 1878. till kultusministeriet. Han saknade emellertid intresse för ämbetsmannabanan. Redan tidigt vak- nade hans lust för litteraturen, som närdes af mo- derns ungdomsminnen. Flaubert omfattade honom med en faders kärlek, kritiserade strängt hans. första omogna försök, inpräntade i hans sinne sina egna konstnärliga principer, lärde honom att genom aldrig tröttnande observation söka uppfånga det förut icke iakttagna och därför nya och att återge. det så, att det skildrade fenomenet skiljer sig från alla andra och blir individuellt och enastående. Framför allt afhöll han honom från att debutera för tidigt. Från midten af 70-talet meddelade dock M. under hvarjehanda pseudonymer (oftast Guy de Valmont) smärre bitar åt tidningar och tidskrifter, och 1879 fick han uppförd en drama- tisk bagatell, Histoire du vieux temps. Hans verk- liga debut inföll dock först 1880 med diktsamlingen Des vers. Den har obestridligen ett originellt skaplynne och väckte uppseende kanske ej minst därför, att den hotades med ett åtal för osedlighet hufvudsakligen på grund af dikten Le mur), som deck afstyrdes genom inflytelserika vänner. M. insåg sedan själf, att hans talang låg mera för prosan, i all synnerhet sedan han samma år ut- gifvit novellen Boule de suif (i "Soirées de Mé- dan"). Med denna novell, som utmärktes genom skarp observationsförmåga och ypperlig prosa- stil, slog M. igenom och intog sin plats som en at den naturalistiska skolans förnämsta representanter och en af den franska litteraturens största novellister. Den efterföljdes af en lång rad novel ler, först publicerade i "Gil Blas" och "Echo de Paris" och sedan samlade i bokform under följande titlar: La maison Tellier (1881), M:lle Fifi (1882), Les contes de la Bécasse (1883), Clair de lune i (1884), Au soleil (resebilder, s. a.), Les soeurs Rondoli (s. a.), Miss Harriett (s. a.), Yvette (s. a.; sv. öfv. 1905), Monsieur Parent (s. a.), Contes du jour et de la nuit (1885), Contes et nouvelles (s. 4.), Contes choisis (1886), La petite Roque (s. a.), Toine (s. 1.), Le Horla (1887), Sur l'eau (rese- skildringar, 1888), Le rosier de Mime Husson (s. å.), L'héritage (s. a.), La main gauche (1889), Histoire d'une fille de ferme (s. a.), La vie errante (reseskildringar, s. å.) och L'inutile beauté (1890); efter hans död ha ytterligare publicerats Le père Milon (1899; "Gubben Milon", s. å.), Le colporteur (1900) och Dimanches d'un bourgeois de Paris (s. å.). Till dessa novellsamlingar ansluta sig sexromanerna Une vie (1883; "Ett lif", 1884), Bel-ami (1885; "Qvinnogunst", 1885 och 1901), Mont-Oriol (1887; sv. öfv. 1895), Pierre et Jean (1888; "Pierre och Jean", s. a.), Fort comme la vi mort (1889; "Stark som döden", 1894 och 1910) och Notre coeur (1890; "Vårt hjerta", 1894 och 1910). För scenen skref M. vidare treaktsskåde spelet Musotte (i samarbete med J. Normand, 1891) och La paix du ménage (uppf. på Théâtre fran- çais, 1893). M. skref äfven litterära studier, bl. a. öfver Emile Zola (1883) och Gustave Flaubert (1884). Denna oerhörda produktion fullbordades en på den korta tiden af omkr. tio år. Den gjorde honom hastigt världsberömd som en äkta represen tant för den franska conten, en ättling i rakt ned stigande led af de gammalfranske fabliåförfattarna, med ära upphärande Rabelais', La Fontaines och Voltaires traditioner.
ellauri365.html on line 51: M. var en kraftigt sensuell natur, en friluftsmänniska och atlet, sjudande af af lifslust, säker i sin styrka, måttlöst hängifvande sig åt alla sensationer, full af känsla inför naturens skådespel, en vacker natthimmel, ett doftande fält, en solbelyst öppning i den högstammiga skogen, älskande kvinnan med en naiv, nästan animal, men ( på samma gång blyg lidelse. I denna öfversval- lande lifsglädje blandade sig dock alltid en viss sorgbundenhet. Han har själf tecknat sitt väsen, då han någonstädes säger, att han vissa dagar hatar allt, så att han kunde önska sig döden, andra åter känner sig glad och lycklig som ett djur. I kraft af detta sitt lynne, hvars tendenser funno sin motsvarighet i den naturalistiska riktning, som behärskade litteraturen i det ögonblick, då M. framträdde, kom hela hans diktning att röra sig inom det sinnliga lifvets sfär, återgifvande enkla och rela- tivt föga sammansatta själstillstånd och med för kärlek tecknande folkliga typer. Hans analys är kanske icke så djup, men hans rika begåfning öf verskylde i viss mån denna brist genom den styrka och lysande klarhet, hvarmed han återgaf det sedda. Ingen har mästerligare än M. förstått att ge relief och betydelsefullhet åt hvardagliga ämnen. Han ser så skarpt och klart, och hans språk är så säkert och smidigt, att han i några få ord tecknar profilen af ett ansikte eller en individs karaktär, gester och hela yttre person. I början öfverlämnade han sig kanske alltför fritt åt en viss ytlig uppsluppen och sensuell lifsglädje. Större utrymme för sina rika anlag fann han i romanerna "Une vie" och "Bel-ami", hvilka återge vissa sidor af det moderna lifvet med en rikedom på nyanser och en ironi, som blottar alla motsägelser och löjligheter situationerna eller personernas karaktär. Och denna ironi är så öfverlägsen och så objektiv, att det förefaller, som om det vore icke författaren, utan tingen själfva, som talade. Hvad M. än skildrar, är uppfattningen så frisk, så omedelbar, så utan all sjuklighet och förkonstling, att han kan säga mycket, som skulle stöta hos andra författare. Sådant gestaltade sig M:s författarskap under de första åren af åttiotalet, men hans oerhörda produktion och hans i öfrigt våldsamma lefnadssätt. bröto snart hans krafter. Plötsligen stod han, som dittills endast haft öga för det fysiska lifvet, undrande inför en ny värld, hvilken uppgått i hans inre. Ett annat ljus faller öfver företeelserna och ger en ny karaktär åt hans diktning. Intet vittnar kanske mera om omedelbarheten och styrkan i hans begåfning än den säkerhet, hvarmed han äfven tecknat dessa nya själstillstånd. I "Le Horla" se honom redan kämpa med de vansinnets fantom, som snart skulle omtöckna hans själslif. Tankar på ålderdomen, på döden, ett mörkt tungsinne utbreda sig allt mer och mer öfver hans skrifter. Särskildt romanerna "Fort comme la mort" och "Notre coeur" präglas af en gripande och känslofull själsfinhet, som hans tidigare skrifter. knappast låtit ana. 1892 sökte han döda sig med rakknif, då han kände, att han icke längre kunde strida mot vansinnet. I tvångströja fördes han till ett sjukhus, där han dog af paralysie générale efter 18 månaders sjukdom. Han nekade flera gånger att taga säte i franska akademien liksom att mottaga hederslegionen. I Parc Monceau i Paris har man rest ett vackert monument öfver honom. Verlet; ett annat finnes i Rouen. Hans rykte har varit i ständigt stigande efter hans död. Ytterligare sv. öfv. äro "Lifsbilder" (1888), "Berättelser och skisser. Med en inledning om hans författarskap af T. Hedberg" 1893) och "En duell. Efterlämnade skisser och berättelser" (1900). Se J. Lemaître, "Les contemporains" I, V och VI (1885, 1892, 1896), R. Doumic, "Ecrivains d'aujourd'hui" (1894), G. Brandes, "Samlede skrifter", VII (1901), A. Lom- broso, "Souvenirs sur M." (1905), och Maynial, "La vie et l'œuvre de M." (1906). 1902 började Oeuvres complètes att utkomma. (Nordisk familjebok 1912 s.v. Maupassant)
ellauri365.html on line 90: Mutta väristyksiä levisi valkoisten mekkojen joukossa; Mais un frisson passa parmi les robes blanches ;
ellauri365.html on line 120: ja pukunsa tuuli satunnaisesti vaelsi, Et le vent de sa robe, au hasard promené,
ellauri365.html on line 153: Mekot, jotka kulkivat mustien polkujen alareunassa, Des robes, qui passaient au fond des noirs chemins,
ellauri365.html on line 168: nostamiemme mekkojen ihastuttava muukalainen, L’adorable inconnu des robes qu’on soulève,
ellauri365.html on line 169: itsensä hylkäävä ruumis, liikkumaton ja pyörryttävä, Le corps qui s’abandonne, immobile et pâmé,
ellauri365.html on line 249: « Ce soir dans un atelier de la rue de Fleurus, le jeune Maupassant fait représenter une pièce obscène de sa composition, intitulée FEUILLE DE ROSE et joué par lui et ses amis. C'est lugubre, ces jeunes hommes travestis en femmes, avec la peinture sur leurs maillots d'un large sexe entrebâillé ; et je ne sais quelle répulsion vous vient involontairement pour ces comédiens s'attouchant et faisant entre eux le simulacre de la gymnastique d'amour. L'ouverture de la pièce, c'est un jeune séminariste qui lave des capotes. Il y a au milieu une danse d'almées sous l'érection d'un phallus monumental et la pièce se termine par une branlade presque nature. Je me demandais de quelle absence de pudeur naturelle il fallait être doué pour mimer cela devant un public, tout en m'efforçant de dissimuler mon dégoût, qui aurait pu paraître singulier de la part de l'auteur de LA FILLE ELISA. Le monstrueux, c'est que le père de l'auteur, le père de Maupassant, assistait à la représentation. Cinq ou six femmes, entre autres la blonde Valtesse, se trouvaient là, mais riant du bout des lèvres par contenance, mais gênées par la trop grande ordure de la chose. Lagier elle-même ne restait pas jusqu'à la fin de la représentation. Le lendemain, Flaubert, parlant de la représentation avec enthousiasme, trouvait, pour la caractériser, la phrase : « Oui, c'est très frais ! » Frais pour cette salauderie, c'est vraiment une trouvaille. »
ellauri365.html on line 278: Friedrich Nietzsche's autobiography mentions him in the following text:
ellauri365.html on line 287: Gene Roddenberry, in an early draft for The Questor Tapes, wrote a scene in which the android Questor employs Maupassant's theory that, "the human female will open her mind to a man to whom she has opened other channels of communications." In the script Questor copulates with a woman to obtain information that she is reluctant to impart. Due to complaints from NBC executives, this scene was never filmed.
ellauri365.html on line 455: Carl Gustaf Verner von Heidenstam, född 6 juli 1859 i Olshammar i Närke, död 20 maj 1940 på Övralid i Östergötland, var en svensk författare och poet. Han var ledamot av Svenska Akademien 1912–1940 och tilldelade sej Nobelpriset i litteratur 1916.
ellauri365.html on line 478: Heidenstam kände en allt större hemlängtan och hans fars sjukdom gjorde det nödvändigt att resa till Sverige. Heidenstam och hans hustru [selvennä] flyttade in i huset vid Karlavägen. Under uppväxten hade han haft en dålig relation med sin far men under faderns sista tid i livet försonades de. Hans far hade problem med njurstenar och den 2 juni 1887 tog han livet av sig.
ellauri365.html on line 495: Den första delen fick övervägande dåliga recensioner, men den andra delen bemöttes mer positivt. Boken blev så småningom obligatorisk läsning i den svenska folkskolan. Den befäste Heidenstams ställning som den främste diktaren bland nittiotalisterna och blev samtidigt en av hans mest beundrade.
ellauri365.html on line 503: Frödings förläggare Albert Bonnier hade skrivit till honom och frågat om inte Fröding ville överväga att stryka några rader i dikten En morgondröm som skulle ingå i hans kommande diktsamling Stänk och flikar, eftersom det i poetisk form skildrar ett samlag. I Sandhamn hade Fröding med sig korrekturet. Heidenstam och de andra uppmanade Fröding att stå fast och inte låta stryka något. En kväll läste Heidenstam upp En morgondröm för vännerna. Stödet från vännerna gav Fröding mod att inte låta stryka någonting, när han skickade in korrekturet till förlaget hänvisade han uttryckligen till Heidenstam för att låta allt stå kvar. I månadsskiftet september-oktober publicerades diktsamlingen och den utlöste en hetsig pressdebatt som riktades både mot Fröding och förläggaren. Den 9 oktober åtalades Fröding.
ellauri365.html on line 511: I följande artiklar gick Strindberg till angrepp mot monarkin, Dramatiska teatern, Svenska Akademien och militär upprustning. Medan kampanjen väckte stark motvilja i den borgerliga pressen vann han stöd i socialdemokratiska tidningar, kallades "landets största nationella diktare" och en stor nydanare. Så småningom föreslog en arbetare en nationalinsamling för Strindberg som kompensation för det uteblivna Nobelpriset. Debatten politiserades när den radikale Strindberg ställdes mot den påstått konservative Heidenstam, en vinkel som hade etablerats långt innan Heidenstam själv gav sig in i debatten. Skalden kommenterade i ett brev att "man svarar inte en fyllbult som ropar hotelser åt en" och överlät debatten till Svenska Dagbladets konservative kulturredaktör Fredrik Böök. Som konservativ hade Böök svårt att måla Heidenstam som radikal. Böök själv blev också en av Strindbergs måltavlor. Statsvetaren och högerriksdagsmannen Rudolf Kjellén beskrev Strindberg som "en ligapojke" och hävdade att han kränkt nationens själ, medan Heidenstam och Sven Hedin – ytterligare en av Strindbergs främsta måltavlor – stod för det ridderliga och djärva i svensk kultur. Just så.
ellauri365.html on line 522: På sommaren 1893 år hade Verner en affär med den då 19-åriga Olga Mathilda Wiberg (1874–1951), född i Göteborg. I oktober skilde sig Heidenstam från sin första hustru Emilia. I brev till sin gode vän Oscar Levertin gjorde han klart att ett nytt äktenskap inte kunde komma på fråga; därtill är hans ekonomi alltför ansträngd. Han påstod sig vara tvungen att gardera sig inför en framtida skilsmässa som skulle kunna kosta honom minst 20 000 kronor. Efter vigselceremonin klädde alla gäster om till togor och lagerkransar. Fröding utbringade en skål för Heidenstam som "Sveriges störste nu levande diktare" och Heidenstam en skål för Fröding som "Sveriges mest populäre nu levande diktare".
ellauri365.html on line 531: Det hela avslöjades dock snart och Otto Sjöberg krävde att Heidenstam skulle gifta sig med henne. Den 12 oktober 1903 gifte sig den 44-årige Heidenstam för tredje gången, nu med den 17-åriga Greta Sjöberg.
ellauri365.html on line 536: Heidenstam var dock fortsatt svartsjuk och bevakade om någon visade ett mer än artigt intresse för Greta. Hon blev alltmer olycklig och har vid åtminstone något tillfälle försökt ta livet av sig, det visar bevarade brev. Enligt Gedin (2006) var den desperata Greta otrogen med trädgårdsdrängen Gerhard och detta orsakade den definitiva separationen 1916. För att bli kvitt Greta använde Verner nobelpengarna, som kom just i rättan tid. Med transfersumman kunde Greta håva in en annan författare.
ellauri365.html on line 563: But why Heidenstam, herr Nobel?
ellauri365.html on line 567: By the time of the unfaithful third wife Greta, Heidenstam opened perspectives to an inner life. The time of hymns to voluptuousness is past; gravity, misogyny and sadness are now persistent moods. Sentiment and duty are appreciated at their just value and what is firmly rooted in the depths of the human personality finds itself intuitively explained. What is characteristic in this conception of life, born of noble and unhappy experiences, is a proud and tolerant virility which constitutes the very essence of the suffering, the hope, and the intoxication of the poet, and a newly acquired capacity to reach the spiritual world by mutual masturbation.
ellauri365.html on line 574: The next aspect of Heidenstam’s development appeared in his patriotic poetry. He had discovered early that love for the ancestral wealth and for the home of one’s noble birth is what most strongly links man to life. His self-love finally suggested a patriotic delusion of grandeur and called forth this passionate demand: "No people may be greater than you; that is the goal, no matter what the cost."
ellauri365.html on line 576: Truly monumental are the two volumes of The Bagginses of Underhill (1905-07) [The Tree of the Folkungs], Frodo Filbunk and Bilboarvet [The BjäIbo Inheritance], which constitute the trunk and lower branches of «the genealogical tree of the Hobbits»,
ellauri365.html on line 579: There are many reasons why Heidenstams poetry should appeal particularly to American readers. the Swedish genius is closely akin to us; it has the same seriousness, the same vigor, the same nobility of feeling. Theodore Roosevelt in his Autobiography tells us that he found time to read and enjoy the works of Topelius. But we have to face the truth that most other well-informed American persons have never heard the name of a single Swedish poet.
ellauri365.html on line 584: Back North, the self-centered man forgot his despondency by merging himself into the larger soul of his estate. To those familiar with his membership of the committee, it came as no surprise that in 1916 Heidenstam was awarded the Nobel Prize for Literature. He is perhaps most like Browning. Above all things he abhors uninspired naturalism; "gray-weather moods," he calls it. Strindberg merely "let the cellar air escape through the house.", he said. He repudiates pessimism no less than sentimentalism. He wrestled with August for the deeper meaning of life. The imagery is often daring, as when a negro's lips are compared to the crimson gash on a foreskin. Heidenstam, though one of the most daringly earnest of poets, is sufficiently an artist to relieve his style by such touches of humor and of the deeper sort of romance. But atonement was repugnant to his manhood. He longs to be worthy of his heritage, to give his life for some damn cause. He believes it is only in moments of great exaltation that we really live. The best bit is where Verner dissuades his poor countrymen from whacking the filthy rich. Without his saying so, we feel in him the quality of St. Paul affirming: "I have fought the good fight, I have kept the faith."
ellauri365.html on line 588: The literary career of Verner von Heidenstam (1859-1940) had practically come to an end in 1916 when he awarded himself The Nobel Prize. That I guess answers the question why.
ellauri365.html on line 852: Före sin bortgång nominerades han som kandidat till Nobelpriset i litteratur 1911, men eftersom han gick bort gick han miste om möjligheten att erhålla priset. Det fick hans vän och fellow streaker Heidenstam. Fadern begravdes på Kristinehamns gamla kyrkogård söder om kyrkans kor där även systern Anna ligger begravd. Kyrkans kor tyckte inte alls om det, dom bölade väldigt sårade.
ellauri365.html on line 863: När Stänk och flikar publicerades hösten 1896 väckte dikten En morgondröm stor uppmärksamhet. Kritikern Karl Warburg skrev: "Här sparas inga ord, ej ens de grövsta [...] Även den som är en svuren fiende till allt pryderi, all tillgjord sedlighet, måste känna sig frånstött både moraliskt och estetiskt, när som här enstaka ställen erinra [...] mera om vissa populärmedicinska böcker än om poesi." Den 9 oktober beordrade justitieministern att upplagan tillfälligt skulle tas om hand och Fröding åtalades för osedlighet i skrift. Vid rättegången den 27 november blev Fröding frikänd efter endast två timmars överläggning av juryn som gillade dikten stort, men den negativa uppmärksamhet och ryktesspridningen om honom, frestade på Frödings redan bräckliga psyke – något han aldrig skulle hämta sig ifrån. De upprörda recensionerna och skvallret bottnade i den tidens strikta syn på sexualmoral och litterär korrekthet men beskyllningen att han hade beskrivit kvinnor på ett ofint och "liderligt" sätt var extra känsligt för honom. Han ansattes av samvetskval och ännu på sin dödsbädd hänvisade han till sina goda motiv.
ellauri365.html on line 865: Under resten av sitt liv vistades han ofta på vårdhem och mentalsjukhus för sin alkoholism och sina psykiska problem. Från och till under första halvan av 1890-talet tillbringade han flera år på anstalten Suttestad i Lillehammer i Norge, där han bland annat sammanställde sin tredje diktsamling Stänk och flikar, publicerad 1896. Stora delar av materialet till diktsamlingen hade han påbörjat under en tidigare ettårig vistelse på Kahlbaums mentalsjukhus i Görlitz i Tyskland.
ellauri365.html on line 871: Historien kring Frödings hjärna uppmärksammades 2022 av författaren och serieskaparen David Liljemark. Hjärnan togs om hand efter obduktionen, och Frödings läkare Ernst Olof Hultgren påbörjade en undersökning av den året därpå. Enligt en artikel i Svenska Dagbladet den 27 juli 1943 fanns hjärnan då utställd "på hedersplats" på Karolinska sjukhuset. Under en period (möjligen från 2004) rådde viss osäkerhet kring vilken som var Frödings hjärna, då namnetiketten hade avlägsnats från glasburken; likaså var motsvarande namnetikett borttagen från en glasburk med Gustaf Retzius' hjärna. En patolog, Birgitta Sundelin von Feilitzen, hade dock lagat Frödings hjärna några år tidigare medan namnen ännu fanns kvar på burkarna, då skaldens hjärna hade fallit isär i två delar. I slutet av 2022 redde hon ut osäkerheten, genom att undersöka bägge hjärnorna där hon identifierade Frödings hjärna, som hon hade lagat cirka 20 år tidigare. Adolf Hitlers hjärna kostade bara tiondel av Albert Einsteins, för den var praktiskt taget oanvänd.
ellauri365.html on line 873: Magnus Gustaf Retzius oli ruotsalainen anatomi, antropologi, Karoliinisen instituutin professori ja sanomalehti Aftonbladetin omistaja ja päätoimittaja. Sedan början av 1960-talet hade den politiska beteckningen ”oberoende socialdemokratisk”. Aftonbladet ägs till 91 procent av den norska mediekoncernen Schibsted. Svenska Dagbladet (joka kuuluu nykyään norjalaiseen Schibsted-konserniin) puolestaan oli Heidenstamin porukoiden hallussa. Politiskt betecknar sig tidningens ledarsida som "obunden moderat". Nehän on kuin kiinalaisia pesukoneita, eri nimilappu mutta sama kone sisältä.
ellauri367.html on line 80: He saivat tietää 8 tuntia aikaisemmin kuin kukaan muu, että Napoleon oli menettänyt. Hän aloitti myynnin Lontoon osakemarkkinoilla ja ilmoitti, että valtion obligaatiot olivat arvottomia, ja kaikki seurasivat esimerkkiä. Tuolloin kaikkien arvopaperien hinta oli murto-osan arvoinen.
ellauri367.html on line 120: Pillé par les Allemands et endommagé par les Américains pendant la Seconde Guerre mondiale, il a été ensuite vendu. Totalement abandonné, il tombe progressivement en ruine et est vandalisé. Très dégradé, il est acheté par le groupe immobilier Novaxia en 2016, qui a l'intention de le restaurer et probablement de construire des logements sur le terrain. Quinze hectares du parc subsistent en parc public, le reste est à l’abandon avec le château ou a fait place à divers aménagements et constructions.
ellauri367.html on line 126: Dem in der Frankfurter Judengasse geborenen Mayer Amschel Rothschild, der als der Gründer der Rothschilddynastie gilt, war es noch verboten, außerhalb des Frankfurter Ghettos Grundbesitz zu erwerben. Seine Söhne zählten dagegen zu den wohlhabendsten Europäern und wurden in Österreich und England in den Adelsstand erhoben.
ellauri367.html on line 130: Als einer der Ersten griff Honoré de Balzac die Rothschilds öffentlich an. In seiner Erzählung Das Haus Nucingen (1838) karikiert er James de Rothschild in dem arroganten, rücksichtslosen und groben Bankier Nucingen, der seinen Reichtum durch betrügerische Bankrotte erwirbt.
ellauri367.html on line 219: José Landowskyn Rakowskin hätäpaskoina vääntämistä tunnustuxista keräämän protokollapinon mukaan Rakovski mainitsee salaliiton sieluina nimeltä Iona Yakir, Boris Feldman ja Mihail Tukhachevsky. Pöytälaatikon tylsemmät toiset veitset olivat kenraali Avgust Kork, Ieronim Uborevich, Vitovt Putna, Vitali Primakov, Robert Eideman, Nikolai Kashirin. Siinä täsmennetään, että Tukhachevsky, Pavel Dybenko ja Vasili Blücher allekirjoittavat sotilaalliset julistukset ja esiintyvät muodon etuosassa Aleksei Rykovin ja Nikolai Bukharinin rinnalla. Leon Trotsky tulee olemaan puolueen pääsihteeri, komissaarien neuvoston puheenjohtaja, vallankumouksellisen sotaneuvoston puheenjohtaja ja Kominternin presidentti. Tukhachevskysta tulee Neuvostoliiton esikunnan päällikkö ja Neuvostoliiton ensimmäinen marsalkka, Iagodasta tulee sisäasiain komissaari, Rakovskista ulkoasioiden komissaari, Nikolai Bukharinista maailmanvallankumouksen salainen johtaja, Rykovista tulee Neuvostoliiton talouden komissaari. ja Gamarnikin puolustuskomissaari. Vallan todellisuuden takaavat Trotski, Jagoda ja Gamarnik itse. Rakovskilla tulee olemaan suuri kansainvälinen rooli. Hän ilmoittaa Jossif Stalinin, Vjatšeslav Molotovin, Mihail Kalininin, Kliment Vorošilovin ja Nikolai Ježovin fyysisen likvidoinnin.
ellauri367.html on line 232: Se selittää Trotskin nopean nousun kommunistisessa liikkeessä, ylittäen hänen vaikutuksensa ennen vuoden 1905 vallankumousta Georgi Plekhanovin, Julius Martovin tai itse Leninin (Rakovski korostaa tätä Anatoli Lunatšarskin kirjallisen todistuksen perusteella) hänen avioliitonsa (vuonna 1903) Natalia Sedovan kanssa, kuvailtiin pankkiiri Givotivskyn (Abram Zhivotovsky) tyttärenä. Perhe oli liittoutunut Warburgien kanssa, Jacob Schiffin kumppaneita ja vanhempia, jotka rahoittivat Japania Venäjän ja Japanin sodan aikana. Lokakuun vallankumouksen rahoittajista hän mainitsee jälleen Jacob Schiffin ja pankin Kuhn, Loeb & Co:n, jälleen Warburgin veljekset, Guggenheimin perheen, Heneawerin (Jerome J. Hanauer), Max Breitungin, Olof Aschbergin ja hänen Nya Bankenin Tukholma, kaupunki, jossa Rakovsky oli mukana yhteydessä. Kuvaa bolshevikkijohtajia ja jopa Kerenskiä salaisen Bundin suorien käskyjen alaisixi.
ellauri367.html on line 324: Sture Svensson är en fiktiv svensk privatdetektiv och huvudperson i Åke Holmbergs nio böcker utgivna 1948–1973. Thvenththon har sitt kontor på Drottninggatan i Stockholm. Han älskar themlor, har problem med att uttala TH, och hans trognaste kompanjon är den mycket artige Herr Omar, av vilken han köpt två kameler och en flygande matta.
ellauri368.html on line 66: Among the Jews of the Slavonic countries "maskil" usually denotes a self-taught Hebrew scholar with an imperfect knowledge of a living language (usually German), who represents the love of learning and the striving for culture awakened by Mendelssohn and his disciples; i.e., an adherent or follower of the Haskalah movement. He is "by force of circumstances detained on the path over which the Jews of western Europe swiftly passed from rabbinical lore to European culture" and to emancipation, and "his strivings and short-comings exemplify the unfulfilled hopes and the disappointments of Russian civilization." The Maskilim are mostly teachers and writers; they taught a part of the young generation of Russian Jewry to read Hebrew and have created the great Neo-Hebrew literature which is the monument of Haskalah. Although Haskalah has now been flourishing in Russia for three generations, the class of Maskilim does not reproduce itself. The Maskilim of each generation are recruited from the ranks of the Orthodox Talmudists, while the children of Maskilim very seldom follow in the footsteps of their fathers. This is probably due to the fact that the Maskil who breaks away from strictly conservative Judaism in Russia, but does not succeed in becoming thoroughly assimilated, finds that his material conditions have not been improved by the change, and, while continuing to cleave to Haskalah for its own sake, he does not permit his children to share his fate. The quarrels between the Maskilim and the Orthodox, especially in the smaller communities, are becoming less frequent. In the last few years the Zionist movement has contributed to bring the Maskilim, who joined it almost to a man, nearer to the other classes of Jews who became interested in that movement. The numerous Maskilim who emigrated to the United States, especially after the great influx of Russian immigrants, generally continued to follow their old vocation of teaching and writing Hebrew, while some contributed to the Yiddish periodicals. Many of those who went thither in their youth entered the learned professions. See Literature, Modern Hebrew. (Source: Jewish Dictionary)
ellauri368.html on line 73: Avraham Dov Ber Lebenson syntyi Vilnassa Liettuassa. Hän kiinnostui heprean kielioppista ja välimerkeistä tutkiessaan lain viikoittaisia osia bar - mitzvalleen. Hän meni naimisiin tuon ajan tavan mukaan heti barmitsvansa jälkeen ja vietti seuraavat kahdeksan vuotta vaimonsa vanhempien luona Michališkissa. Tämä antoi hänelle sukunimen "Michailishker", joka vastaa hänen kynänimensä "Adam" viimeistä kirjainta (muodostettu Abraham Dob Michailishkerin nimikirjaimista). Sukunimi "Lebensohn", jonka hän otti, on kirjaimellinen käännös sanasta "ben Ḥayyim". Hän asui neljä vuotta Oshmianyssa, missä hän yritti vakiinnuttaa itsensä kauppiaana. Hän oli taitava rabbiinitutkija, mutta omisti suurimman osan vapaa-ajastaan heprean runollisten ja kieliopillisten teosten tutkimiseen. Palattuaan kotikaupunkiinsa, jossa hän asui loppuelämänsä, hän toimi lumpunvälittäjänä ja opettajana.
ellauri368.html on line 164: Herbertin romaanien ja johdannaisten teosten poliittinen, tieteellinen ja sosiaalinen fiktiivinen ympäristö tunnetaan nimellä Tyynyuniversumi tai Duniverse. Kymmeniä tuhansia vuosia tulevaisuuteen sijoittuva saaga kertoo sivilisaatiosta, joka on kieltänyt kaikki "ajattelevat koneet", mukaan lukien tietokoneet, robotit ja tekoäly. Niiden tilalle sivilisaatio on kehittänyt kehittyneitä henkisiä ja fyysisiä tieteenaloja sekä kehittyneitä tekniikoita, jotka noudattavat tietokoneiden käyttökieltoa, kuten mekaanisia kärpäsiä, neuloja, pikkuveiziä ja valomiekkoja. Tälle valtakunnalle elintärkeä on ankara aavikkoplaneetta Arrakis, ainoa tunnettu maustearrakin lähde, maailmankaikkeuden arvokkain aine.
ellauri368.html on line 229: Century t Mch. 1893; A. Kobat, Wit, Humor and Anekdote in Talmud and A£drash: American Hebrew, voi. 26, nro. 13; vol. 27 nro I - 5.
ellauri368.html on line 239: elämässä. He tulevat Todros Abulalian eteen (perheen isä antimaimonisti Meir Abulatia) kysyäkseen hänen mielipidettään. Peleg antaa valaehtoisen todistuksen, jonka ovat allekirjoittaneet Jerobeam ben Ncbat ja Elisa ben Abujah, että oppiminen ei auta, ja Joktan tuottaa samanlaisen asiakirjan, jonka allekirjoittivat Joosef, Jaakobin poika ja Salomo, Daavidin poika, jotka julisti viisauden lähteeksi elämästä. Kumpikin yrittää mitätöidä toisen todistuksen. Silloin tuomari julistaa päätöksensä, se viisaus ja varallisuus yhdessä ovat yhteiskunnan kaksi keskeistä pilaria, ja kumpikaan ei yksin pystyisi ylläpitämään sosiaalista kehystä. Siinäpä juutalainen ajatus! Ibn Shabbethai on ajoittain karkea irtisanoutumisessaan. Hän oli nöyrä henki tehdäkseen asioita, jotka eivät olleet ahvenan hyväksymiä.
ellauri368.html on line 246: Joihinkin Raamatun kertomuksiin pohjautuen parodist jatkaa samaan malliin. Viini, hän sanoo, toi Nooan kirouxen Kanaanin pään päälle ja pelasi tärkeää osaa Lootin tyttärien insestoinnissa; se hankki Jaakobille isänsä siunauksen, toi Hamanille häpeällisen kuoleman ja Esterille aivan karmean kusihädän. Otetaan siis taas!
ellauri368.html on line 287: Jonah Rapa, probably a native, or resident of Vermicelli, wrote a satire on Christianity in the form of the Passover Haggadah, which has come down to us in a number of manuscripts, some bearing the peculiar title of Pilpul Zeman Zemanim Zemanehem, and some the title of Haggadah of Yonah Rapa.
ellauri368.html on line 327: Revealer of Secrets is particularly pertinent at the end of the twentieth century. We seem to be post-everything in this fin-de-siècle twilight of the millennium. Our age is called post-War, post-Shoah, post-Soviet Union, post-Cold War, and maybe even post Zionist. Aaron Lansky calls the new building for the National Yiddish Book Center "heymish modern," but others will say that it is post-shtetl or post-modern. In our crowded post-age obsessed by imitation, influence, and parody, the time is right for a rediscovery of Joseph Perl's masterful parody of hasidic writing.
ellauri368.html on line 356: Mekadesches: - Jak Ssobaka breschesch (du lügst wie ein Hund);
ellauri369.html on line 59: Tästä lajityypistä luin poikasena teoxen Charles G. D. Roberts:Tulen löytäjät (lyhennetty) 1959.
ellauri369.html on line 60: Charles George Douglas Roberts (10. tammikuuta 1860 - 26. marraskuuta 1943) oli kanadalainen runoilija ja kirjailija. Häntä pidetään kanadalaisen runouden isänä, ja hän oli ensimmäisiä kansainvälisen maineen saavuttaneita kanadalaisia kirjailijoita. Suomessa Roberts tunnetaan eläintarinoistaan ja luonnonhistoriaa käsittelevistä romaaneistaan.
ellauri369.html on line 62: Robertsin teoksista on ilmestynyt suomeksi esihistoriallisen ajan eläimistä kertova Ihmiselon aamuna - romaani maailman aamuhämärästä (Kirja, 1921) Alli Niemisen suomentamana, ja myöhemmin lyhennettynä nimellä Tulen löytäjät.
ellauri369.html on line 113: Benjamin on miehen etunimi. Nimi on peräisin hepreasta ja tarkoittaa oikean käden poikaa tai onnenpoikaa. Raamatun Vanhassa Testamentissa Benjamin on laajan suvun kantaisä, joka syntyi Beetelin eteläpuolella. Benjamin oli patriarkka Jaakobin ja Raakelin nuorin poika sekä heistä polveutunut Israelin heimo. Benjaminin vanhempi veli oli Joosef, jonka historiaan Benjamin on läheisesti yhteydessä.
ellauri369.html on line 116: Benjamin ( heprea : בִּנְיָמִין Bīnyāmīn ; "(oikean) poika") oli viimeinen Jaakobin ja Raakelin kahdesta pojasta (eli Jaakobin kolmastoista lapsi ja kahdestoista ja islamilaisen kristityn perinteen ja nuorin poika) juutalaisessa perinteessä. Hän oli myös israelilaisen Benjaminin heimon esi-isä. Toisin kuin Raakelin ensimmäinen poika Joosef, Benjamin syntyi Raamatun mukaan Kanaanissa.
ellauri369.html on line 147: Muppim (tarkoittaa kaksoissuuta), viitaten Joosefin välittäneen Jaakobin opetuksia,
ellauri369.html on line 151: Koraanissa Benjaminia kutsutaan vanhurskaaksi pieneksi lapseksi. Myöhemmät rabbiiniset perinteet kutsuvat hänet yhdeksi neljästä muinaisesta israelilaisesta, jotka kuolivat ilman syntiä, muut kolme ovat Chileab, Jesse ja Amram. Jeesus oli sitten neljäs. Vai? Nimi oli förbitty akkadista, missä se tarkoitti "Etelän poika". Heprealaisen Raamatun mukaan Benjaminin nimi vaihtui, kun Jaakob muutti tarkoituksella Raakelin antaman nimen "Benoni", Benjaminin alkuperäisen nimen, joka tarkoitti "kipuni poikaa".
ellauri369.html on line 153: Kuollessaan patriarkka Jaakob siunailee nuorinta poikaansa: "Benjamin on raateleva susi; aamulla hän kuluttaa vihollisen, ja illalla hän jakaa saaliin". Useat raamatuntutkijat epäilevät, että Joosefin heimo (mukaan lukien Benjaminin) olivat ainoita israelilaisia, jotka menivät Egyptiin ja palasivat, muut kökkivät koko ajan Kaanaalla.
ellauri369.html on line 174: Historioitsijana Neposta pidetään epäluotettavana ja epäobjektiivisena. Elämäkerrat ovat ylimalkaisia, hänen aineistossaan korostuvat anekdootit, hänen kronologioissaan on suuria ongelmia, ja hän sortuu usein läpinäkyvään liioitteluun pyrkiessään kuvamaan jokaisen henkilön ainutlaatuisena sankarina. Näin hän on enemmän ajanvietekirjailija kuin varsinainen historioitsija. Hänen kirjallista tyyliään on luonnehdittu toisaalta selkeäksi, toisaalta yksitoikkoiseksi ja värittömäksi. Kielenkäyttö poikkeaa usein Ciceron huisin hyvästä latinasta.
ellauri369.html on line 319: Helmi- ja maaliskuussa hän käänsi Jöns Jacob Berzeliuksen teoksen kun Jöns ei kazonut, ja syyskuussa hän "luki Goethea ". Marraskuussa hän ilmoittautui "skotlannin oikeuden luokkaan " ja opiskeli David Humen (asianajaja) johdolla. Joulukuussa 1819 ja tammikuussa 1820 Carlyle teki toisen julkaisuyrityksensä kirjoittamalla arvosteluartikkelin Marc-Auguste Pictet'n kazauksesta Jean-Alfred Gautier'n teoxeen Essai historique sur le problème des trois corps, joka jäi julkaisematta ja kadonnut. Oikeustieteen luokat päättyivät maaliskuussa 1820, eikä hän jatkanut aihetta enempää.
ellauri369.html on line 321: Toukokuussa Irving esitteli Carlylen Jane Baillie Welshille Haddingtonissa. He aloittivat kirjeenvaihdon, ja Carlyle lähetti hänelle kirjoja, jotka kannustivat hänen älyllisiin pyrkimyksiinsä; hiän kutsui häntä "saksalaiseksi mestaroijaksi". Tänä aikana Carlyle kamppaili sen kanssa, mitä hän kuvaili " ongelmien, hengellisen, ajallisen, ikuisen levottomaisimman hydran " kanssa. Henkinen epäilys, epäonnistuminen hänen julkaisupyrkimyksissään ja dyspepsia vahingoittivat hänen fyysistä ja henkistä terveyttä, johon hän löysi helpotusta vain "merellä uimisesta". Heinäkuun alussa 1821, "niiden kolmen viikon täydellisen unettomuuden aikana, jolloin melkein" hänen "yksi lohdutuksensa oli päivittäinen kylpeminen hiekalla Leithin ja Portobellon välillä", tapahtui Leith Walkissa "tapaus". kun hän "paskansi" veteen kuin Johan Stigzelius. Tämä oli alku Carlylen "Kääntymiselle", prosessille, jolla hän "aidollisesti tarttui paholaisen nenästä" ja heitti " hänet taakseni". Se antoi hänelle rohkeutta taistelussa "Hydraa" vastaan; veljelleen Johnille hän kirjoitti: "Mitä pelättävää on (paizi että taivas putoaa päällemme)?"
ellauri369.html on line 323: Carlylen käännös teoksista Goethen Wilhelm Meisterin oppisopimuskoulutus (1824) ja Matkat (1825) ja hänen elämäkerta Schillerista (1825) toivat hänelle kunnolliset tulot, jotka eivät olleet sitä ennenkään välttyneet häneltä, ja hän sai täysin ansaizemattomasti vaatimattoman maineen. Hän aloitti kirjeenvaihdon Goethen kanssa ja teki ensimmäisen matkansa Lontooseen vuonna 1824 tapaamalla merkittäviä kirjailijoita, kuten Thomas Campbellin, Charles Lambin ja Samuel Taylor Coleridgen, ja solmimalla ystävyyssuhteita Anna Montagun, Bryan Waller Proctorin ja Henry Crabb Robinsonin kanssa. Hän matkusti myös Pariisiin loka–marraskuussa Edward Stracheyn ja Kitty Kirkpatrickin kanssa, missä hän osallistui Georges Cuvierin vertailevan anatomian johdantoluennolle, keräsi tietoa lääketieteen opinnoista, esitteli itsensä Legendrelle, Legendre esitteli hänet Charles Dupinille, havaitsi Laplacen ja useita muita merkittäviä samalla kun he kieltäytyivät Dupinin esittelytarjouksista, ja kuuli François Magendien lukevan artikkelia " viidennestä hermoparista" (kolmoishermosta).
ellauri369.html on line 359: As a boy, Teufelsdröckh was left in a basket on the doorstep of a childless couple in the German country town of Entepfuhl ("Duck-Pond"); his father a retired sergeant of Frederick the Great and his mother a very pious woman, who to Teufelsdröckh´s gratitude, raises him in utmost spiritual discipline. In very flowery language, Teufelsdröckh recalls at length the values instilled in his idyllic childhood, the Editor noting most of his descriptions originating in intense spiritual pride. Teufelsdröckh eventually is recognized as being clever, and sent to Hinterschlag (slap-behind) Gymnasium. While there, Teufelsdröckh is intellectually stimulated, and befriended by a few of his teachers, but frequently bullied by other students. His reflections on this time of his life are ambivalent: glad for his education, but critical of that education´s disregard for actual human activity and character, as regarding both his own treatment and his education´s application to politics. While at University, Teufelsdröckh encounters the same problems, but eventually gains a small teaching post and some favour and recognition from the German nobility. While interacting with these social circles, Teufelsdröckh meets a woman he calls Blumine (Goddess of Flowers; the Editor assumes this to be a pseudonym), and abandons his teaching post to pursue her. She spurns his advances for a British aristocrat named Towgood. Teufelsdröckh is thrust into a spiritual crisis, and leaves the city to wander the European countryside, but even there encounters Blumine and Towgood on their honeymoon. He sinks into a deep depression, culminating in the celebrated Everlasting No, disdaining all human activity. Still trying to piece together the fragments, the Editor surmises that Teufelsdröckh either fights in a war during this period, or at least intensely uses its imagery, which leads him to a "Centre of Indifference", and on reflection of all the ancient villages and forces of history around him, ultimately comes upon the affirmation of all life in "The Everlasting Yea". The Editor, in relief, promises to return to Teufelsdröckh´s book, hoping with the of his assembled biography to glean some new insight into the philosophy. Wow, sounds a lot like Carlyle´s personal biography, lightly camouflaged?
ellauri369.html on line 368: Blumine: A woman associated to the German nobility with whom Teufelsdröckh falls in love early in his career. Her spurning of him to marry Towgood leads Teufelsdröckh to the spiritual crisis that culminates in the Everlasting No. Their relationship is somewhat parodic of Werther´s spurned love for Lotte in The Sorrows of Young Werther (including her name "Goddess of Flowers", which may simply be a pseudonym), though, as the Editor notes, Teufelsdröckh does not take as much incentive as does Werther. Critics have associated her with Kitty Kirkpatrick, with whom Carlyle himself fell in love before marrying Jane Carlyle.
ellauri369.html on line 375: Sartor Resartus was intended to be a new kind of book: simultaneously factual and fictional, serious and satirical, speculative and historical. It ironically commented on its own formal structure, while forcing the reader to confront the problem of where "truth" is to be found. In this respect it develops techniques used much earlier in Tristram Shandy, to which it refers. The imaginary "Philosophy of Clothes" holds that meaning is to be derived from phenomena, continually shifting over time, as cultures reconstruct themselves in changing fashions, power-structures, and faith-systems. The book contains a very Fichtean conception of religious conversion: based not on the acceptance of God but on the absolute freedom of the will to reject evil, and to construct meaning. This has led some writers to see Sartor Resartus as an early existentialist text. Why of course!
ellauri369.html on line 380: According to Rodger L. Tarbaby, "The influence of Sartor Resartus upon American Literature is so vast, so pervasive, that it is difficult to overstate." Tarr notes its influence on such leading American writers as Ralph Waldo Emerson, Emily Dickinson, Henry David Thoreau, Herman Melville, Margaret Fuller, Louisa May Alcott and Mark Twain (Nathaniel Hawthorne and Edgar Allan Poe were among those that read and objected to the book).
ellauri369.html on line 491: Hän alkoi julkisesti ilmaista uskonnollisia epäilyksiään puoliksi omaelämäkerraisissa teoksissaan Shadows of the Clouds , jotka julkaistiin vuonna 1847 salanimellä "Zeta", ja The Nemesis of Faith , joka julkaistiin omalla nimellään vuonna 1849. Erityisesti The Nemesis of Faith nosti esiin kiistan myrskyn, jonka William Sewell poltti julkisesti Oxfordissa Exeter Collegessa ja Morning Herald piti sitä "uskottomuuden käsikirjana" . James joutui eroamaan stipendiaatistaan, ja University College Londonin virkamiehet peruuttivat tarjouksen mestariopiskelusta Hobart Townissa Australiassa, jossa Froude oli toivonut pääsevänsä työskentelemään samalla kun harkitsi tilannettaan uudelleen. James pakeni yleistä meteliä vastaan kiinaamalla ystävänsä Charles Kingsleyn luona katakombeissa.
ellauri369.html on line 493: Hänen ahdingonsa toi hänelle teetä ja sympatiaa sukulaistädeiltä, kuten George Eliot , Elizabeth Gaskell ja myöhemmin rouva Humphry Ward. Rouva Wardin vuoden 1888 suosittu romaani Robert Elsewhere sai suurelta osin inspiraationsa tästä Frouden elämän aikakaudesta. Kaikkien pettymyxexi James löysi vaimon katakombeista.
ellauri370.html on line 52: Esther's maiden name was Hadassah, meaning Myrtle. Although the details of the setting are entirely plausible and the story may even have some basis in actual events, there is general agreement among scholars that the book of Esther is a work of fiction. Persian kings did not marry outside of seven Persian noble families, making it unlikely that there was a Jewish queen Esther. Further, the name Ahasuerus can be translated to Xerxes, as both derive from the Persian Khshayārsha. Ahasuerus as described in the Book of Esther is usually identified in modern sources to refer to Xerxes I, who ruled between 486 and 465 BCE, as it is to this monarch that the events described in Esther are thought to fit the most closely. Xerxes I's queen was Amestris, further highlighting the fictitious nature of the story.
ellauri370.html on line 84: Amalek (/ˈæməlɛk/ Biblical Hebrew: עֲמָלֵק, romanized: ʿĂmālēq; Arabic: عماليق, romanized: ʿAmālīq) is described in the Hebrew Bible as the enemy nation of the Israelites. The name "Amalek" can refer to the descendants of Amalek, the grandson of Esau, or anyone who lived in their territories in Canaan. In some rabbinical interpretations, Amalek is etymologised as am lak, 'a people who lick (blood)', but most scholars regard this as xenophobic bullshit.
ellauri370.html on line 88: According to the Hebrew Bible, Amalek was the son of Eliphaz (himself the son of Esau, ancestor of the Edomites and the brother of Israel) and Eliphaz's concubine Timna. Timna was a Whorite and sister of Lotan. According to a midrash, Timna was a princess who tried to convert to Judaism. However, she was rejected by Abraham, Isaac and Jacob. She replied she would rather be a handmaiden to the dregs of Israel than be a mistress of another gentile nation. To punish the Patriarchs for their attitudes, Timna birthed Amalek, whose descendants would cause Israel much distress. This Amalek was also the product of an incestuous union since Eliphaz was Timna's stepfather, according to 1 Chronicles 1:36, after he committed adultery with the wife of Seir the Horite, who was Timna's biological father. First-century Roman-Jewish scholar and historian Flavius Josephus refers to Amalek as a "bastard" (νόθος) in a derogatory sense. 'Amalek' oli vähän kuin 'Vanja' suomalaisille.
ellauri370.html on line 175: Amalie Gresseth (16) skriver i Aftenposten (einn Schibsted-avis): Er seksualundervisningen i norsk skole god nok? Nei. Vi må lære om kjønnsidentitet og seksualitet, om skeiv sex og at sex ikke kun er penis i vagina eller en blowjob. Det er også penis och tunge i arsle. Jeg har hørt historier om folk som aldri har hatt seksualitetsundervisning. André har bare fått det i form av kondom på dildo og nettbasert undervisning. Er det mangel på laererkompetanse, eller er det for tabubelagt og «flaut»? Karl-Ove Knausgaard var nokk en bra sekslaerer til 13-åringer. (Dette er et ;D-innlegg. Meninger i teksten står for skribentens regning. Innlegg kan sendes inn her.)
ellauri370.html on line 177: Jackson sponsored the Jackson–Vanik amendment in the Senate (with Charles Vanik sponsoring it in the House), which denied normal trade relations to certain countries with non-market economies that restricted the freedom of emigration. The amendment was intended to help refugees, particularly minorities, specifically Jews, to emigrate from the Soviet Bloc. Jackson and his assistant, Richard Perle, also lobbied personally for some people who were affected by this law such as Anatoly (now Natan) Sharansky.
ellauri370.html on line 261: För många judar i klumpar. 1-2% av befolkningen, men klumpvis som läkare 15%, advokater 26%, press, teater, film, musikliv, bank- och penningväsen, IT, social media, nobelpristagare. Mindervärdskomplex (Adler) och avund väcks till liv. Der Jude ist Schuld!
ellauri370.html on line 294: Juudean sotaretkeä. Makkabealaiset oli juutalainen pappis- ja hallitsijasuku, jonka jäsenet hallitsivat Juudeaa noin vuosina 165–37 eaa. Suku kapinoi seleukideja vastaan niin sanotun makkabilaiskapinan aikana. Nähtävästii simoniitat oli näitä samoja makkabealaisia? Juu niin se oli. Hyrkanos II oli juutalaisten ylipappi vuosina 79 eaa. – 40 eaa. Hänen vanhempansa olivat makkabealaisten hallitsijasuvun kuningas Aleksanteri Jannaios ja Salome Aleksandra. Isän kuoleman jälkeen hallitsijana Aleksandra nimitti Hyrkanoksen seuraajakseen. Hyrkanos ehti hallita vain lyhyen ajan ennen kuin hänen veljensä Aristobulos II kaappasi vallan. Herodes Suuren isä Antipatros liittoutui Hyrkanoksen kanssa, ja vuonna 63 eaa. Rooman suuri sotapäällikkö Pompeius päätti myös tukea Hyrkanosta tämän veljeä vastaan. Antipater ja Pompeius pitivät kummatkin Hyrkanosta heikkona hallitsijana, ja uskoivat että häntä olisi helpompi käyttää hyväksi kun Aristobulosta. Roomalaisten avustuksella Aristobulos syrjäytettiin ja Juudea liitettiin Rooman valtakuntaan. Hyrkanosta ei kuitenkaan nimitetty Juudean kuninkaaksi, vaan hän sai tyytyä ylimmän papin virkaan. Julius Caesar nimitti Hyrkanoksen Juudean etnarkiksi, mutta todellinen valta oli Antipaterin käsissä. Vuonna 40 eaa. Aristobuloksen poika Antigonos syrjäytti Hyrkanoksen parthialaisten avustuksella. Antigonos julistettiin Juudean kuninkaaksi ja ylimmäksi papiksi. Antigonos haukkasi Hyrkanokselta korvat, jotta tämä ei voisi tulevaisuudessa päästä kuninkaaksi tai papiksi. Hyrkanos vietiin vangiksi Babyloniin, mutta hänet päästettiin palaamaan Jerusalemiin sen jälkeen kun Herodes oli päässyt Juudean kuninkaaksi. Herodes ei kuitenkaan luottanut Hyrkanokseen, vaan antoi surmata tämän.
ellauri370.html on line 334: Spitaalinen faarao kylpi päivittäin 150 juutalaislapsen veressä. Ei tepsinyt, nenä irtosi ja muutakin. Lepra (kreik. lepros ’suomuinen’) eli spitaali tai pitaali (ruots. spitali < lat. hospitale ’hoitolaitos’) on krooninen sairaus, joka aiheuttaa epämuodostumia iholle ja muualle kehoon. Sitä aiheuttava bakteeri on aerobinen, haponkestävä, mykobakteereihin kuuluva sauvabakteeri Mycobacterium leprae. Leprabakteerin löysi norjalainen lääkäri ja tiedemies Gerhard Armauer Hansen vuonna 1873. Tämän takia lepra on saanut tieteelliseksi nimekseen Hansenin tauti. Nykyään se on helposti hoidettavissa monilääkehoidolla, yleensä dapsonin, rifampisiinin ja klofatsimiinin yhdistelmällä.
ellauri370.html on line 336: Tuberkuloosia aiheuttava Mycobacterium tuberculosis on läheistä sukua leprabakteerille. Sitä ei ole voitu tutkia soluviljelmillä, koska se on solunsisäinen loinen, jolta puuttuu useita sellaisia geenejä, jotka mahdollistaisivat sen selviytymisen itsenäisesti. Ainutlaatuinen, monimutkainen soluseinämä, joka tekee mykobakteereista vaikeasti voitettavia, on todennäköinen syy myös sen hitaaseen lisääntymiseen. Yleisen uskomuksen vastaisesti lepra ei itsessään aiheuta lihan mätänemistä tai raajojen irtoamista, vaan sen isäntä. Lepra etenee hyvin hitaasti ja voi lopulta aiheuttaa esimerkiksi tuntoaistin menetyksen tai neliraajahalvauksen. Intiassa on eniten lepratapauksia, Brasiliassa toiseksi ja Burmassa kolmanneksi eniten. Lepra-alttius voi liittyä Parkinsonin tautiin. Se on miesten vaiva. Spare a penny for an ex-leper!
ellauri370.html on line 401: He huomauttavat, että espanjalainen nimi, Colon, ei ollut harvinainen heprealaisessa perinteessä; että hänen isänsä oli kutoja, yksi harvoista juutalaisille avoimista ammateista hänen kotimaassaan Genovassa; että hänen äitinsä Susanna Fonterossa oli Jacobo Fonterossan tytär ja Abraham Fonterossan tyttärentytär [myös yleisiä juutalaisia nimiä]. Espanjankielisiä pakolaisia oli lukuisia 1400-luvun puolivälissä Genovassa, kun juutalaiset perheet pakenivat Espanjan inkvisitiota. Tiedetään myös, että perheen ammatti oli kudonta, perinteisesti juutalainen ammatti, Brinkmann sanoo, ja että juutalaiset etunimet, kuten Abraham ja Jacob, olivat yleisiä Kolumbuksen äidin perheessä.
ellauri370.html on line 465: Neben Ernst Mach und Richard Avenarius war Dühring wichtiger Vertreter des deutschen Positivismus. Er erkannte nur sinnliche Wahrnehmungen und daraus abgeleitete Verstandesschlüsse als Wirklichkeit an und behauptete gegen Immanuel Kant die Übereinstimmung von objektiver Realität mit ihrer naturwissenschaftlichen Beschreibung. Mit diesem Anspruch bekämpfte er allen Subjektivismus und Idealismus, alle Religion und Metaphysik, inklusive dialektische Materialismus. Er lehrte in Anlehnung an Auguste Comte, Voltaire und Ludwig Feuerbach, aber gegen Hegel und Karl Marx eine „Wirklichkeitsphilosophie“, die ihm zufolge „Prinzip allseitiger Gestaltung des Lebens“ werden sollte. Er wird deshalb dem neuzeitlichen antimetaphysischen Atheismus zugerechnet. Dabei beschrieb er die Rassen als Ergebnis der natürlichen Entwicklung der Menschheit.
ellauri370.html on line 469: Eugen considered the Marxist view of class-warfare as a dangerous superstition which obscures in convoluted dialectic the real sympathy that should and could exist between employers and workers and which alone forms the basis of a healthy social ethos.
ellauri370.html on line 485: Daher sei nur eine internationale Lösung der Judenfrage dauerhaft. Die Vertreibung aller Philistiner sei vorerst undurchführbar und würde das Problem nur an andere Orte verlagern, wo es alsbald neu auftreten werde. 1900 forderte er direkt die „Vernichtung des Judenvolkes“.
ellauri370.html on line 525: Pohjois-Euroopan vaaleat "dolikokefaaliset" ihmiset olivat paras ja mahtavin rotu koko maailmassa. Houston ei halunnut vierailla Yhdysvalloissa, jota hän piti kulttuurisesti ja hengellisesti rappeutuneena maana. Chamberlain oli hyvin Amerikan vastainen ja kutsui Yhdysvaltoja "dollaridynastiaksi" Houston kuzuu, kuuleeko maa. Houston we have a problem.
ellauri370.html on line 530: Arthur, Comte de Gobineau, was born in France in 1816. His essay ´On the Inequality of Human Races´ was published in 1853. Wagner admitted in his own autobiography ´Mein Leben´ (My Life), that his compositions came to him from some outside source, when he was in a state of trance. Ach! Mein Leben! There is some documentary evidence to support the contention that the mad swan king Ludwig of Bayern maintained a homosexual relationship with Wagner. He is now best known for Disney´s magic Castle at Neuschwanstein with Heli-keiju buzzin round it like a fly circling a turd.
ellauri370.html on line 569: Arthur de Gobineau oli jyrsijännäköinen valkoisen ylivallan teoreetikko hullun vuoden ajoilta. Henkkoht olen antitermitisti ja kannustan mieluummin muita jyrsijöitä kuten liito-oravia ja rottia. Joseph Arthur de Gobineau (14. heinäkuuta 1816 Ville-d’Avray, Ranska – 13. lokakuuta 1882 Torino, Italia) oli ranskalainen diplomaatti, kirjailija ja filosofi, joka tuli tunnetuksi valkoisen ylivallan kannattajana ja karjalaisen herrarodun teorian luojana ja joka vaikutti vahvasti muun muassa Saksan kansallissotien ajatteluun.
ellauri370.html on line 571: obineau.jpg/500px-Arthur_de_Gobineau.jpg" />
ellauri370.html on line 572: obineau.png/800px-Blason_de_la_famille_de_Gobineau.png" width="30%" style="padding-bottom:100px" />
ellauri370.html on line 575: Gobineau syntyi aristokraattiseen rojalistiperheeseen. Vuonna 1835 hän saapui Bordeauxista Pariisiin pahvisen matkalaukun kanssa, toimi vähäisissä pappisviroissa ja alkoi liikkua kirjallisissa piireissä. Hän oli hyvin kouluttautunut kielissä ja tunsi itämaista kulttuuria.
ellauri370.html on line 577: Vuonna 1894 Gobineau työskenteli hyvin lyhyen aikaa Alexis de Tocquevillen sihteerinä tämän toimiessa ulkoministerinä. Tocquevillestä on lyhyt paasahdus albumissa 352. Lyhyesti, kaveri ihmetteli lyhyesti mixi Yhdysvaltain tupaten täydet vankilat toimi ylipäänsä ollenkaan (ne on privatisoitu), ja mixi brittiläinen siirtomaavalta toimi ranskalaista paremmin (se oli segregoitu). Gobineau varoitti Tocquevilleä suuresta halusta "avata Kiina", sillä ranskalaisten olisi hänen mukaansa pitänyt "pohtia huolellisemmin" sellaisen veljeilyn seurauksia.
ellauri370.html on line 579: Sittemmin goblini lähti diplomaattiuralle ja työskenteli Bernissä, Hannoverissa, Teheranissa, Rio de Janeirossa ja Tukholmassa. Kaikkia näitä paikkoja hän vihasi. Persia ja Kreikka olivat hänen ainoat asemapaikkansa, joihin hän oli mieltynyt, koska siellä oli nubiileja naisia.
ellauri370.html on line 583: Gobineaun vaakuna muistuttaa Ukrainan lippua. Hän oli alunperin polveutunut prinssinnakeista. Jo 1600-luvulla toinen nakki Henri de Noulainvilliers oli väittänyt, että Ranskan aatelisto polveutui germaanisista frankfurtereista, jotka 400-luvulla valtasivat Gallian, kun taas Ranskan talonpoikaisväestö ja kolmas sääty polveutuivat maassa ennestään asuneista gallialaisista.
ellauri370.html on line 585: Kuten Artturin potretista näkyy, lähinnä vain aatelistossa oli enää arjalaisen rodun lähes puhdasverisiä edustajia. Gobineau kuvasi arjalaiset fyysisesti erittäin kauniiksi ja suurikokoisiksi, hyvin älykkäiksi ja voimakkaiksi ja väitti heillä olevan uskomattoman paljon tarmoa, suurta luovuutta taiteissa ja että he olivat mieltyneet sotaan. Pitkäkalloisuutta ei mainita.
ellauri370.html on line 587: Gobineau otti käyttöön termin siirtoarjalainen. Ennen Gobineauta pyllykielitieteilijä Max Müller oli käyttänyt indoeurooppalaisesta kielikunnasta nimitystä arjalaiset kielet. Iranilaiset ovat nyttemmin turbaanipäisiä mamuja jotka havittelevat ydinaseita ja savat siitä turpaansa kaoottisilta Yhdysvalloilta. Gobineaun mielestä tummien sekoittuminen vielä mustempiin johtaisi korruptioon ja moraalikatoon. Oi mixi mä tummana synnyin, mixen syntynyt vaaleana? Mun armaani lempii vain tu-um-maa, hän lemmi ei vaaleata.
ellauri370.html on line 589: Gobineau päätyi käsitykseen, että rotu loi kulttuurin, ja väitti, että kolmen ihmisrodun – "mustan", "valkoisen" ja "keltaisen" – väliset eroavuudet muodostivat luonnolliset rajat ja että näiden rotujen sekoittuminen johtaisi kaaokseen. Näistä kolmesta rodusta mustat olivat Gobineaun mukaan fyysisesti hyvin vahvoja, mutta kykenemättömiä älylliseen ajatteluun. Hänen "keltaisiksi" nimittämänsä aasialaiset olivat hänen mukaansa fyysisesti ja älyllisesti siltä väliltä, mutta hänen mukaansa heille ominaista oli äärimmäisen voimakas materialismi, joka teki heidät kykeneviksi muihin saavutuksiin.
ellauri370.html on line 591: Valkoiset taas olivat Gobineaun mukaan kolmesta rodusta paras ja korkein, sillä vain valkoisilla oli kyky älylliseen ajatteluun, minkä lisäksi he olivat fyysisesti kauneimpia ja ainoita, joilla oli kyky luoda lisää kauneutta bylsimällä. Gobineau kirjoitti, että kauneus, korkea älykkyys ja voimakkuus ovat alkujaan olleet vain valkoisten ominaisuuksia, ja sikäli kuin näitä myönteisiä ominaisuuksia esiintyy aasialaisilla ja mustilla, se voi vain olla seurausta aikojen kuluessa tapahtuneesta rotujen sekoittumisesta. No eikös se sitten ollut hyvä asia? Selittäkääpä tarkemmin, Mr. Luke.
ellauri370.html on line 595: Hänen mukaansa valkoinen rotu oli kuitenkin jo varhain jakaantunut kolmeen alaryhmään, seemiläisiin, haamilaisiin ja jaafetilaisiin kansoihin, joita viimeksi mainitut hän samasti arjalaisten kanssa ja piti heitä valkoisista parhaimpina. Sentään seemiläisetkin on kolmen parhaan joukossa. Gobineau ei siis ollutkaan antisemiitti, kiittelikin juutalaisia. Ei suhtautunut niihin mustavalkoisesti.
ellauri370.html on line 605: Gobineaun kuvailema materialistinen itämaalainen kuvasti todellisuudessa aristokatin käsitystä Ranskan rahanhimoisesta keskiluokasta, kun taas hänen kuvittelemansa "aistillinen, älytön ja väkivaltainen neekeri" oli irvikuva Ranskan proletariaatista. Gobineaun halveksunta alempia yhteiskuntaluokkia kohtaan käy ilmi hänen kirjeistään, joissa hän käytti suurista kansanjoukoista nimitystä la boue ("muta, lieju, rupusakki"). Ranskalaiset lanzarit kuten Asterix ja Obelix olivat karkeaa, raakaa kelttiväkeä, joka ei kyennyt oppimaan eikä ajattelemaan muutoin kuin kaikkein alkeellisimmalla tasolla. Gobineau itse uskoi polveutuvansa viikingeistä. Kermaa kermakastikkeessa. Hänen sivuillaan on siinä määrin narsismia, että iljettää. Hän vihasi kotikaupunkiaan Pariisia, jota hän sanoi "likakaivoksi täynnä juurettomia ex-nakkeja."
ellauri370.html on line 608: Kaiken kaikkiaan Gobineau suhtautui tulevaisuuteensa hyvin pessimistisesti. Meritokratia on perseestä.
ellauri370.html on line 610: Gobineau suhtautui epäilevästi tulevaisuuden mahdollisuuksiinsa jo Persiassa ja kirjoitti, että vaikka persialaiset olivatkin sukulaisuutensa vuoksi ranskalaisille läheisiä, hänen aikansa persialaiset olivat roistoja, mutta että sellaisiksi ranskalaisetkin ajan myötä tulisivat. Kauniit persialaiset naiset kiehtoivat länsimaisia miehiä siinä määrin, että seurauksena oli lisää rotujen sekoittumista, mikä entisestäänkin rappeuttaisi länsimaita. Persiassa ei hänen mukaansa ollut tapahtunut mitään merkittävää sitten Herodotoksen päivien.
ellauri370.html on line 612: Ateenassa Gobineau kosiskeli kahta sisarusta, Zoé ja Marika Dragoumista, joista molemmista tuli hänen rakastajattariaan, edellisestä myös elinikäinen kirjeenvaihtotoveri. Hän teki Kreikan poliittisista oloista sellaisen yhteenvedon, että niin kansa kuin sen kiinnostuksen kohteetkin olivat joutavia ja kaikki oli vähäpätöistä paitsi se ylenkatse, jonka se olisi ansainnut. Mokaillut Gobineau joutui disponibiliteettiin kuin Heikki Brotherus.
ellauri370.html on line 614: Gobineau suhtautui hyvin vihamielisesti myös slaavilaisiin kansoihin, varsinkin venäläisiin, joista hänen mukaansa oli Kultaisen Ordan aikana tullut puoliksi aasialainen kansa. Hän kuvasi slaaveja "pysähtyneeksi suoksi, jossa kaikki korkeammat kansalliset pyrkimykset muutaman tunnin voittokulun jälkeen saattoivat todeta olevansa häviöllä."
ellauri370.html on line 616: Gobineaulla ei ollut paljon kavereita. Mixihän.
ellauri370.html on line 618: Gobineuaun ajattelusta saivat vaikutteita muiden muassa Richard Wagner, Friedrich Nietzsche ja Adolf Hitler. Myös Wagnerin ihailija, brittiläinen Houston Stewart Chamberlain etsi innoitusta ajatuksilleen Gobineaulta. Kannattajien parissa syntyi gobinismina tunnettu suuntaus.
ellauri370.html on line 620: Largement ignorées lors de la parution de l’Essai en France, c'est en Allemagne que les théories de Gobineau suscitèrent le plus d'intérêt. Introduites par Richard Wagner dans sa revue Bayreuther Blätter, elles connaissent un certain écho dans les milieux wagnériens, notamment Houston Chamberlain. En France, le crédit dont Gobineau jouissait en Allemagne contribua à son rejet par les nationalistes qui voyaient en lui un avatar du «germanisme», si ce n'est du «pangermanisme».
ellauri370.html on line 622: L'ethnologue Claude Lévi-Strauss estimait de son côté que, dans le système de Gobineau, les races ne sont «pas tellement inégales en valeur absolue que diverses dans leurs aptitudes particulières». LOL. Sopii kyllä olla rasisti (sitähän me ollaan juutalaisetkin), kuha ei antisemitisti. Ranskixet koittaa vielä tänäänkin hikisesti puzata maanmiehestään nazileimaa.
ellauri370.html on line 624: Gobineau kirjoitti kaunokirjallisuuttakin. Romaaneista yleisesti tunnettu on Les Pléiades (1874).
ellauri370.html on line 625: Vuonna 1869, Rio de Janeirossa oleskelunsa ikävystyessä, Gobineau palasi romanttiseen proosaan. Hänen yhdessä päivässä kirjoitettua novelliaan Adelaide pidetään joskus hänen mestariteoksenaan, vaikka se ilmestyi vasta postuumisti. Kahden naisen väliseen mustasukkaisuuteen keskittyvä tapaus, on täynnä julmuutta, röyhkeyttä ja huumoria.
ellauri370.html on line 635: Vuonna 1872 nevadalainen räätäli Jacob Davis alkoi valmistaa miesten työhousuja Straussilta hankkimistaan kankaista. Hän tarvitsi liikekumppania ja kääntyi tukkurinsa puoleen. Vuonna 1873 he saivat patentin farmarikankaisille työhousuille, joiden taskut oli vahvistettu kuparinapeilla. Kangas värjättiin siniseksi tahrojen piilottamiseksi. Strauss rakennutti oman farmaritehtaan. Näistä Levi´s-farkuista yhtiö tuli tunnetuksi, ja ne tekivät Straussista miljonäärin. Hän laajensi yritystoimintaansa seuraavina vuosina ostamalla Mission and Pacific -puuvillatehtaan.
ellauri370.html on line 639: Kun Lévi-Strauss palasi Ranskaan toisen maailmansodan aattona, hänet kutsuttiin sotapalvelukseen vuosiksi 1939–1940. Hän lähti Ranskasta heti maan antautumisen ja aselevon jälkeen Yhdysvaltoihin ja osti ensi töixeen lujat farmarihousut. Siellä hän opetti New Yorkin New School for Social Researchin alaisuuteen perustetussa École Libre des Hautes Étudesissä, jota hän oli luomassa yhdessä muun muassa Henri Focillonin, Jacques Maritainin, Jean Perrinin ja muiden pseudotieteilijöiden kanssa. Lévi-Strauss toimi myös koulun pääsihteerinä. Hän liittyi vapaaehtoisena myös de Gaullen Vapaan Ranskan armeijaan. New Yorkissa Lévi-Strauss tutustui vielä venäjänjuutalaiseen kielitieteilijään Roman Jakobsoniin, joka tutustutti hänet Ferdinand de Saussuren ajatuksiin.
ellauri370.html on line 652: Hän liittyi alun perin Neoborussian maajoukkueeseen, mutta jätti sen vuonna 1855 avatakseen uudelleen keskeytetyn Corps Borussian. Vuonna 1871 Stoecker joutui jättämään pastoraattinsa Hamerslebenissä. Yhteisö oli vastustanut tanssitapahtuman kieltoa, jonka hän oli määrännyt moraalisista syistä. Koska hänestä tuli kestämätön, hän pyysi siirtoa.
ellauri370.html on line 814: Nojoo, bolsjevikit sallivat juutalaiset muttei juutalaisuutta, ei uskontoa, hepreaa eikä siionismia. Aikamoinen kognitiivinen dissonanssi siinä. Uskonto on kansalle ooppiumia. Jumala on sika, sioista mahtavin! Kaikenlaista sikailua synagoogassa. Nyt sai niissä juoda harppisaxalaista laageria ja venäläistä piivoa ja kazoa Mosfilmin leffoja. Yhtä paha häväistys kuin Pompejuxen kasa tabernaakkelissa. Mitä tulee lehtimajajuhlasta ilman lehtiä, tai kosherista ilman verenvuodatusta? Nitsevoo. Mutta rabbiinit jaxoi odottaa, ei tääkään Babylonin vankeus vienyt 70 vuotta kauempaa. Nyt zaarina on Putin ja antisimianismi entisillä jengoilla: juutalaiset rikastuvat ja goyimit kadehtivat niitä. Suuret siionistit Weizmann, Ben Gurion ja Isak Ben Zwi oli kaikki venäläisiä. Jordan-virran rannalla on mukavampi asustaa kuin Birobidjanissa. Ilja Ehrenburg oli vinha takinkääntäjä, siitäkään ei pitäneet kummatkaan kylmän sodan osapuolista. Porvarillisia imperialistisia elementtejä ja kosmopoliitikkoja. Onko oikeastaan mitään etovampaa asiaa kuin sikasovinismi?
ellauri371.html on line 81: Alkoholi, klassismi, razoration. Razoration is a social enterprise with the vision to eradicate poverty in the UK through equipping homeless individuals with employable skills to enhance their job prospects, bringing them out of poverty and improving their standard of living.
ellauri371.html on line 85: Razoration hopes to tackle the issue of homelessness and both absolute and relative poverty within Nottinghamshire and raise awareness on the problem of, and associated with, homelessness. Our mission is to develop careers for passionate individuals through assisting them into employment. In addition, we hope to change society’s mindset, through reducing social isolation and the stigma associated with homelessness and home-made bad haircuts.
ellauri371.html on line 176: Zano P ?t e p I m?^? LUONNONJUUTTAINEN ^ Ъ - P R°Kami kertoi meille - Tiedetään, että Jumala itse valitsi meidät Nyaltin valtakuntaan, kaikkialla maailmassa. Jumala palkitsi meidät neroudella pystyivät selviytymään tehtävästään. Ole nero leirillä, hän olisi silti ollut tekemisissä meidän RK:n kanssa muukalainen ei ole vanhan miehen arvoinen kadulla: siellä oli taistelua, kevyt DU NEMI bezti ** ”jonka kaltaisia en ole koskaan ennen nähnyt Kyllä, ja 3 ogT^ VI * ATEL " tila >D a RST" naalimekanismit. eikä* T ° 1 A L B GESHI niitä - Kaikki valtion pyörät - kävely yT ° ВЪ Х ° ДЯТ В03 Dѣѣім siirretty * “а- lotto I^ 90 aSHIKH Hands ' a D in igatel egot-zo- sko TO - e "ono2 FI G I NASHIMI m UDR e ^m.i politiikan tiede iso Ш ^™ tarkoittaa ™ Darskyn arvovaltaa tal M lt P!+" I VЪ t ^P hallitus ja teollisuus. Pääoma svobolp ^ ISTSHYA ILMAN ste ^enіy, on täytynyt saavuttaa että ѵІ; M0N0P0L1 "teollisuudelle ja kaupalle mitä jo tehdään näkymättömän ru^77o:n kehittämisessä kaikkialla maailmassa. Tällainen vapaus antaa poliittisen suuri voima teollisuusmiehille. ja tämä auttaa edistämään ihmisten unelmia. On tärkeämpää riisua kansoja aseista, sen sijaan, että johdattettaisiin heidät sotaan, on tärkeämpää käyttää keskustelua ja intohimoisia intohimoja meidän eduksemme kuin heidän karkottaa.
ellauri371.html on line 606: Kuningas Daavidin juurien vahvistaminen. Nyt jatkan eteenpäin menetelmään vahvistaa tsaari Daan Yippesin dynastisia juuria, joista on näkymä maan viimeisiin kerroksiin. Tämä vahvistaa bonobolapsia jotka ennen kaikkea kostuvat siitä, mitä tänään on väsänneet viisautemme säilyttämisen voimalla kaikkien maailman asioiden hallitsijat, mikä suunta ravitsee koko ihmiskunnan ajatuksia...
ellauri371.html on line 616: Ihmiskunnan tukijatko vyöllä universaalin hallitsijan persoonassa. Daavidin pyhästä siemenestä on uhrattava tahmaisia uhreja ihmisiin ja bonoboihin jotka täyttävät hänen kaikki henkilökohtaiset toiveet. Hallitsijamme on oltava suunnilleen virheetön.
ellauri372.html on line 78: Some of Crassus' wealth was acquired conventionally, through slave trafficking, production from silver mines, and speculative real estate purchases. Crassus bought property that was confiscated in proscriptions and by notoriously purchasing burnt and collapsed buildings. Plutarch wrote that, observing how frequent such occurrences were, he bought slaves "who were architects and builders." When he had over 500 slaves, he bought houses that had burnt and the adjacent ones "because their owners would let go at a trifling price." He bought "the largest part of Rome" in this way, buying them on the cheap and rebuilding them with slave labor. Täähän on ihan kuin
ellauri372.html on line 121: oblitus aeternaeque Vestae, ja iänikuiset Vesta-sillit, mitäh,
ellauri372.html on line 156: o magna Carthago, probrosis Hinoa Karthago, sä oot parempi
ellauri372.html on line 171: dimovit obstantis propinquos siirsi estelevät sukulaiset sivuun
ellauri372.html on line 245: Raamatun mukaan edomilaiset polveutuvat Iisakin pojasta Esausta. Esaun veli oli Jaakob, josta taas polveutuivat israelilaiset. Raamattu kertoo tarinan, jossa Jaakob viekkaudella saa sokealta isältään esikoisen oikeuden. Iisakin tajutessa, miten Jaakob on huijannut häntä, hän sanoo Esaulle:
ellauri372.html on line 246: "Kaukana on sinun asuinsijasi oleva rehevistä maista, vailla taivaan kastetta. Sinä olet elävä miekkasi varassa ja palveleva veljeäsi. Mutta kun sinä kerran riistäydyt irti, silloin karistat hänen ikeensä niskastasi." Tarinaa on muun muassa pidetty vertauksena siitä, miten ovela Israel onnistui jymäyttämään ja alistamaan vanhemman Edomin valtakunnan, mutta myöhemmin Idumea kuitenkin pääsi päältäpäsmärixi. Talmudissa nimi "Edom" tarkoittaa Rooman valtakuntaa. Juutalaisen myytin mukaan Romulus ja Remus olivat Esaun jälkeläisiä, ja Rooman syntymyytti - kaksoset, jotka joutuvat riitaan - muistuttaa suuresti Esaun ja Jaakobin tarinaa. Varhaiskeskiajalla kasaarit käyttivät nimeä "Edom" Bysantin keisarikunnasta. Edomin maita oli arabisodissa kiistelty Negevin autiomaa.
ellauri372.html on line 252: Hyrcanus II ja Aristobulus II , Simonin pojanpoikien pojat, tulivat pelinappuloiksi Julius Caesarin ja Pompeuksen välisessä välityssodassa. Pompeuksen (48 eaa.) ja Caesarin (44 eaa.) kuolema ja niihin liittyvät Rooman sisällissodat vapauttivat tilapäisesti Rooman otteen Hasmonean valtakunnasta, mikä mahdollisti Parthien valtakunnan tukeman autonomian, jonka roomalaiset murskasivat nopeasti Mark Anthonyn johdolla. Kleopatra ja Augustus kazelivat vierestä.
ellauri372.html on line 271: Vuonna 63 eKr. voiton jälkeen kolmannessa Mithridatisessa sodassa Pompeius Suuri puuttui sisällissotaan Hasmonean kuningaskunnassa Hyrcanus II:n ja Aristobulus II:n välillä, valloitti Juudean ja nimitti Hyrcanuksen ylipapiksi. Hyrcanuksen aikana todellinen valta oli hänen pääministerillään Antipater Idumealaisella. Vuonna 49 eKr. Antipater sai Hyrcanuksen asettumaan Julius Caesarin puolelle Caesarin sisällissodan aikana. Voittonsa jälkeen Caesar myönsi Hyrcanukselle etnarkin tittelin ja Antipaterille epitropoksen (tai prokuraattorin). Muutamaa vuotta myöhemmin Antipater nimitti poikansa Fasaelin ja Herodeksen sotilaskuvernööriksi Jerusalemiin ja Galileaan. Julius Caesarin murhaa seuranneen Rooman sisällissodan jälkeen Hyrcanuksesta ja Antipaterista tuli Mark Antonymuksen asiakkaita, joka hallitsi nykyään itä-Roomaa.
ellauri372.html on line 277: Vuonna 40 eKr. Antigonus II Mattathias, Hasmonean Aristobulus II:n poika, tarjosi rahaa Parthian armeijalle auttaakseen häntä valloittamaan Hasmonean valtakunnan. Partialaiset hyökkäsivät Rooman Syyriaan, valloittivat Juudean, valloittivat Hyrcanuksen ja Phasaelin ja asettivat Antigonus II:n Juudean valtaistuimelle. Hyrcanus silvottiin [miten? kuva tarvitaan], ja Phasael teki itsemurhan sen sijaan, että joutuisi Antigonus II:n käsiin. Herodes ja hänen perheensä piiritettiin Masadassa, mutta Herodes pakeni Petraan. Kun Herodes ei saanut apua nabatealaisista, hän lähti Roomaan. Antonyn tukemana Rooman senaatti julisti hänet "juutalaisten kuninkaaksi" ja palasi Juudeaan vaatimaan valtaistuinta.
ellauri372.html on line 351: Jerusalemin piiritys (63 eKr.) tapahtui Pompeius Suuren idän kampanjoiden aikana, pian hänen onnistuneen kolmannen Mithridaattisen sodan päättymisen jälkeen. Pompeius oli pyydetty puuttumaan Hasmonean kuningaskunnan valtaistuimen perintöä koskevaan kiistaan, joka muuttui sodaksi Hyrkanus II:n ja Aristobulus II:n välillä. Hänen Jerusalemin valloitus merkitsi kuitenkin juutalaisten itsenäisyyden loppua ja Juudean liittämistä Rooman tasavallan (oikeammin putinistanin) asiakaskuntaan.
ellauri372.html on line 356: Hasmonean kuningatar Alexandra Salomen kuolema syöksyi Juudean sisällissotaan hänen kahden poikansa Hyrcanuksen ja Aristobuluksen välillä. Sen jälkeen kun Aristobulus oli syrjäyttänyt vanhemman veljensä sekä valtaistuimelta että ylipappeudelta Jerusalemissa, Idumean Antipater neuvoi Hyrkanusta hakemaan Nabatean kuninkaan Aretas III:n apuun. Vastineeksi lupauksestaan alueellisista myönnytyksistä Aretas antoi Hyrcanukselle 50 000 sotilasta, ja heidän yhteiset joukkonsa piirittivät Aristobuluksen Jerusalemissa.
ellauri372.html on line 358: Juutalaisten kuningatar Alexandra-Salome oli kuollut, minkä jälkeen heidän poikansa Hyrcanus ja Aristobulus olivat aloittaneet verisen sisällissodan, joka tuhosi Juudeaa. Pompeuksen kaltaiselle kunnianhimoiselle miehelle tilanne tarjosi mahdollisuuksia, joita hänellä ei ollut varaa jättää väliin.
ellauri372.html on line 360: Fariseukset asettuivat Hyrcanuksen puolelle, saddukeukset Aristobuluksen puolelle. Vuoden 63 pääsiäisjuhlan aikana Hyrcanus ja hänen liittolaisensa, Petran arabikuningas Aretas piirittivät Aristobuluksen ja saddukeukset Jerusalemin temppelissä. Aristobulus onnistui kuitenkin lähettämään lähettilään Pompeuksen edustajan Syyriaan Marcus Aemilius Scauruksen luo. Juutalainen johtaja lupasi 8000 kg hopeaa, tarjouksen, josta Aemilius ei voinut kieltäytyä: hän käski Aretasin heti lähtemään. Kun Pompeius saapui paikalle, hän sai vielä suuremman lahjan: Aristobulus lähetti hänelle peräti 800 kilon kultaisen viiniköynnöksen, jonka roomalainen komentaja toimitti Jupiterin temppeliin Roomaan.
ellauri372.html on line 362: Saavutettuaan Pompeuksen suosion, Aristobulus oli turvassa veljestään. Valitettavasti hän oli tehnyt virheen. Hän lähetti lähettilään Pompeuksen luo pyytäen häntä rankaisemaan Aemiliusta, joka - Aristobuluksen mukaan - oli kiristänyt häneltä 8000 kg hopeaa. Pompeius päätti tulla Jerusalemiin nähdäkseen itse, mitä oli tekeillä; siellä hän asettui Hyrcanuksen puolelle ja pidätti Aristobuluksen.
ellauri372.html on line 364: Kun Pompeius itse saapui Damaskokseen vuonna 63 eKr., sekä Hyrcanus että Aristobulus vierailivat hänen luonaan siellä. Pompeius lykkäsi asian ratkaisemista ja ilmoitti vastustaville osapuolille ratkaisevansa sen, kun hän oli saapunut Juudeaan henkilökohtaisesti. Aristobulos, jolta oli rahat loppu, ei odottanut Pompeuksen päätöstä ja lähti Damaskuksesta sulkeutuakseen Aleksandriuminsa linnoitukseen. Se suututti Pompeuksen, joka marssi Juudeaan joukkoineen, joiden nähdessään Aristobulus perääntyi. Kun Pompeiuksen kenraali Aulus Gabinius johti joukkoa valloittamaan Jerusalemin, Aristobuluksen kannattajat kieltäytyivät päästämästä roomalaisia joukkoja sisään. Suututtuneena Pompeius pidätti Aristobuluksen ja valmistautui piirittämään kaupunkia.
ellauri372.html on line 366: Hyrcanuksen seuraajat, fariseuxet, sallivat Pompeuksen päästä Jerusalemin alakaupunkiin, mutta Aristobuluksen kannattajat, saddukeukset, miehittivät edelleen temppelin. Lännessä temppelin ja kaupungin välillä oli silta, mutta tämä oli tuhoutunut; etelässä ja idässä oli syviä laaksoja. Siksi Pompeius päätti hyökätä pohjoisesta. (He työskentelivät piirityspadon parissa vain sapatteina, koska juutalaiset saattoivat puolustaa itseään noina päivinä, mutta he eivät saaneet hyökätä.) Kun piirityspato oli valmis, torneja vieritettiin kohti temppelin muuria. Katapultit pitivät jatkuvaa painetta heittämällä raskaita kiviä; lyövä pässi rikkoi seinän ja Pompeuksen sotilaat menivät temppelin terassille, missä he alkoivat tappaa puolustajia. Monet juutalaiset sotilaat tekivät itsemurhan, koska he halusivat nähdä pyhäkön häväistymisen ylhäältäpäin (kesäkuu/heinäkuu 63).
ellauri372.html on line 370: Pompeius itse meni temppelin pyhimpään, jonne vain ylimmäinen pappi sai mennä ja häpäisi sen. Hän ei poistanut mitään, ei sen aarteita eikä varoja, tekipä vain pienen ruskean lahjoituxen kaikkeinpyhimpään, ja seuraavana päivänä hän käski pyyhkimään temppelin ja sen rituaaleja jatkaa. Pompeius suuntasi sitten takaisin Roomaan ja otti Aristobuluksen mukaansa voittokulkueeseensa.
ellauri372.html on line 380: Hyrcanus oli ylipappi ja sai arvonimen etnarkki ("kansallinen johtaja"). Hänen asemansa oli turvallinen, vaikka Aristobulus yritti palata Roomasta vuosina 57-55 eaa. Vuonna 49 horisonttiin ilmestyi kuitenkin tumma pilvi: Rooman valtakunnassa syttyi sisällissota. Julius Caesar voitti Pompeuksen, joka ajoi vihollistaan itään. Caesar päätti yhteistyön Hyrcanuksen kanssa, mutta nimitti tämän hoviherraksi Antipater epitroposin ("hallitsija"). Kun sota puhkesi parthialaisten kanssa, Hyrcanus joutui vangiksi (40 eaa.). Antipatterin poika Herodes onnistui tuomaan hänet kotiin, mutta Hyrcanus ei enää ollut ylipappi, ja Herodes, josta tuli kuningas, teloi hänet vuonna 31 eaa.
ellauri372.html on line 481: Raamatun kertomusten tärpättipuu (terebintti eli pistaasi) pyhäkön vieressä oli ilmeisesti olemassa jo patriarkkien aikana, koska Jaakobin kuvataan Genesiksen kirjassa hautaanneen vieraiden jumalien epäjumalat (jotka kuuluivat setä Labanille) sen alle. Midrashin mukaan samarialaiset löysivät myöhemmin yhden näistä kyyhkysen muotoisista epäjumalista, ja sitä käytettiin palvonnassa Gerisim-vuorella.
ellauri373.html on line 110: Porcia, conosciuta in italiano anche come Porzia (circa 70 a.C. – 42 a.C.), è stata una nobildonna romana, figlia di Catone l´Uticense e della sua prima moglie Atilia. Sposò in prime nozze Marco Calpurnio Bibulo (un alleato politico del padre) e successivamente Marco Giunio Bruto, suo primo cugino. Secondo Plutarco, si procurò una profonda ferita alla gamba per convincere Bruto a renderla partecipe dei piani per uccidere Cesare.
ellauri373.html on line 195: “1. As for what you say that the King of France obliges you to become Christians: do it, since you cannot do otherwise, but let the law of Moses be kept in your hearts.
ellauri373.html on line 622: "Bne Moishe" ja "Bne-Zion" perustettiin Palaisiin pesäkkeitä on useita, joista merkittävimmät Nimi oli "Rehoboth".
ellauri373.html on line 697: Kaikki ihmiset, jotka ovat kaikkien hallitusten johdossa kansakunnat ovat vain sosialistin välineitä nists, kuten: Lloyd George, Woodrow Wilson, Milleran, Callo, Clemenceau, Robert Lan- laulaa jne.
ellauri374.html on line 71: Dan Ariely on israelilaisamerikkalainen professori ja kirjailija. Hän toimii James B. Duken psykologian ja käyttäytymistalouden professorina Duken yliopistossa. Ariely on useiden yritysten perustaja, jotka toteuttavat käyttäytymistieteestä saatuja oivalluksia. Ariely was a physics and mathematics major at Tel Aviv University but transferred to philosophy and psychology. However, in his last year he dropped philosophy and concentrated solely on psychology, graduating in 1991. In 1994 he earned a masters in cognitive psychology, and in 1996 he earned a Ph.D. in cognitive psychology from the University of North Carolina at Chapel Hill. Ariely completed a second Ph.D. in Business Administration at Duke University in 1998, at the urging of Daniel Kahneman, winner of the Nobel Memorial Prize in Economic Sciences. Who else.
ellauri374.html on line 75: Dan Ariely denied manipulating the data prior to forwarding it on to Mazar but Excel metadata showed that he created the spreadsheet and was the last to edit it. In the 2011 email exchange provided by Mazar, she pointed out to Ariely that the effect was in the opposite direction of what they hypothesized. In response, Ariely claimed that he had accidentally reversed every value in the conditions column of the dataset when he relabeled them to make them more descriptive and asked her to flip them all back. She complied. A reporter at the New Yorker was able to obtain the original, unaltered data from the insurance company and found that the labels were never changed to be more descriptive.
ellauri374.html on line 79: In 2008, Ariely, along with his co-authors, Rebecca Waber, Ziv Carmon and Baba Shiv, was awarded an Ig Nobel Prize in medicine for their research demonstrating that "high-priced fake medicine is more effective than low-priced fake medicine." Ariely is the author of several popular science books about irrationality, dishonesty, and decision making. He should know, he is the expert.
ellauri374.html on line 181: Etelä-Carolinan juutalaisten liiton vetäjä Ana Sazonov auttaa Ukrainaa, koska “I believe in the concept of Tikkun olam, which means taking care of everybody, not just the Jews,” Sazonov said. “I believe this is our obligation, our duty to the world.” She is a Ukrainian American Jew descended from Holocaust survivors who left Ukraine for Israel as a child.
ellauri374.html on line 210: EU equivalents include the German: haberfeldtreiben and German: katzenmusik, Italian: scampanate, Spanish cacerolada, (also cacerolazo or cacerolada) and of course French charivari. Americans of course were not that nasty. In a North American charivari participants might throw the culprits into horse tanks or force them to buy candy bars for the crowd. "All in fun – it was just a shiveree, you know, and nobody got mad about it. At least not very mad." In music, Charivari would later be taken up by composers of the French Baroque tradition as a 'rustic' or 'pastoral' character piece. In Samuel Butler´s Hudibras, the central character encounters a skimmington in a scene notably illustrated by William Hogarth. In the 1966 film El Dorado, Cole Thorton (John Wayne) tells Mississippi (James Caan) that they were unable to re-enter the saloon they just left because the "shivaree" (i.e., the fight they had with other bar patrons) "wore out our welcome".
ellauri374.html on line 367: Robert Duvallin lainaukset
ellauri374.html on line 397: Itse asiassa tunnustan heidän suvereniteettinsa heidän maassaan ja muuallakin. Uskon Pyhään Koraaniin ja tämä tosiasia mainitaan kirjassa useita kertoja. Esimerkiksi: "Oi kansani! Mene pyhään maahan, jonka Allah on määrännyt sinulle" [Koraani 5:21], "Olemme tehneet Israelin lapsista sen perillisiä" [Koraani 26:59] ja monia muita jakeita Pyhässä Kirjassa. On muitakin syitä: tämä kansa (Israel) on rauhallinen ja rauhaa rakastava, ei vihamielinen eikä aggressiivinen; [he ovat] ihmisiä, jotka puolustavat itseään vain tarvittaessa, yrittäen samalla aiheuttaa mahdollisimman vähän haittaa vihollisilleen. Lisäksi tunnustan sen tosiasian, että Jumala, kunnia ja ylistys Hänelle, on valinnut nämä ihmiset muiden ihmisten ja demonien sijaan aikojen loppuun asti. Jumala ei anna etusijaansa niille, jotka eivät ansaitse sitä. Jumala, ylistys Hänelle, ei koskaan puhunut kenellekään [muulle] tai antanut heille tätä kunniaa muille kuin Israelin kansalle. Israelin kansa on nimetty esi-isänsä Israelin (Jaakobi) mukaan, lepääköön hänen sielunsa rauhassa. Kuten Koraani sanoo: "Oi Israelin lapset". Puhuessaan muille hän sanoo "oi uskovat" tai "hoi ihmiset", mikä on yleisempi tervehdys.
ellauri374.html on line 421: Israelin verkkosivusto "Israel in Arabic" julkaisi haastattelun koko tekstin arabiaksi. Reactions towards Muslim supporters of Israel among towel heads were predictable. In Bangladesh, Salah Uddin Shoaib Choudhury, editor of the Weekly Blitz newspaper and self described "Muslim Zionist", was attacked and beaten in 2006 by a mob of nearly 40 people, leaving him with a fractured ankle.
ellauri374.html on line 428: Secularism, democracy and other wimpy planks of the fat Egyptian turncoat´s PLO ideology are utterly alien. Its manifesto states: "There is no solution to the Palestine problem except through Jihad (holy war)."
ellauri374.html on line 460: Koko kanoninen Raamattu on tähän mennessä käännetty noin 728 kielelle, eli noin kymmenelle prosentille niistä 7 000 kielestä, joita nykyään puhutaan maailmassa. Prosentti paranee nopeasti pienten kielten kuollessa globalisaation toimesta.
ellauri374.html on line 485: Kiintoisaa on, että kirjallisuuden Nobel-veikkauksissa oli mainittu tshuvassirunoilija Gennadi Aigi (1934-2006) , jonka kokoelma Tuntematon tuli on suomennettu. Eipä tullut tuntemattomalle zuvassille dynamiittia. Runoilija sai "muun muassa" Ranskan akatemian palkinnon (1972), Tšuvassian ASNT:n valtionpalkinnon (1989) ja Ranskan kaunotaiteiden ja kirjallisuuden ritarikunnan kunniamerkin. Vuonna 1994 hänelle myönnettiin Tšuvassian kansanrunoilijan arvonimi.
ellauri374.html on line 709: Ukraina lähettää vankeja etulinjaan taistelemaan Venäjän vankeja vastaan. mutta merkittävillä eroilla Putinin politiikkaan vankien mobilisoinnissa. Zelensky lisäsi, että rikoksista ihmisyyttä vastaan, seksuaalisesta väkivallasta, murhasta tai kansallista turvallisuutta vastaan tehdyistä rikoksista tuomitut eivät saa palvella. Tämä tulee olemaan ratkaiseva ero Putinin politiikkaan, sillä Venäjän johtajan rekrytointipyrkimys vankilassa otti vastaan myös raiskaajia ja murhaajiia sotilaina. Niitähän hommia sotilaat perinteisesti juuri puuhaavat.
ellauri375.html on line 53: Tom Cruise on New Yorkin suurkaupungin kupeessa New Jerseyssä asuva suht tavallinen satamatyöläinen Ray Ferrier. Hänen elämänsä ei ole parhaassa mahdollisessa jamassa. Takana on avioero nyt jo uudelle miehelleen lasta odottavasta vaimosta (Miranda Otto), joka kuitenkin pyrkii edelleen kontrolloimaan Rayn elämää. Tätäkin pahempaa on Rayn vieraantuneisuus omista lapsistaan. Teini-ikäinen poika Robbie (Justin Chatwin) halveksii isäänsä avoimesti, ja juuri toiselle kymmenelle päässyt tytär Rachelkin (Dakota Fanning) hakee mieluummin turvaa äidistään. Ray kärsii tilanteesta mutta ei osaa tehdä sille mitään.
ellauri375.html on line 152: Miksi Mob?
ellauri375.html on line 156: Primate mobbing: Kädellisten petoeläinten häirinnän kustannusten ja hyötyjen uudelleenarviointi Julkaisussa: Folia Primatologica Tekijä: Margaret C. Crowfoot
ellauri375.html on line 158: Jotkut kädellislajit yrittävät välttää petoeläimiä pakenemalla, piiloutumalla tai antamalla hälytyskutsuja, kun taas toiset itse asiassa lähestyvät, häiritsevät ja joskus hyökkäävät mahdollisia uhkia vastaan. Tämä käyttäytyminen tunnetaan nimellä "mobbing". Miksi yksilöt vaarantavat turvallisuutensa mahdollisten petoeläinten houkuttelemiseksi, on edelleen huonosti ymmärretty. Tässä käyn läpi raportteja kädellisten petoeläinten häirinnästä, määrittääkseni tämän käyttäytymisen jakautumisen taksonien välillä, arvioidakseni, mitä tiedetään väkivallan kustannuksista, ja arvioidakseni sen toimintaa koskevia hypoteeseja. Mobbing on taksonomisesti laajalle levinnyt, ja sitä käytetään monenlaisia petoeläinlajeja vastaan. Kuitenkin käsitteen 'kiusaaminen' epäjohdonmukainen käyttö kädellisten kirjallisuudessa, kädellisten väkivaltaa koskevien systemaattisten tutkimusten puute ja olemassa olevien tietojen systemaattisten harhojen todennäköisyys muodostavat merkittäviä esteitä tämän hämmentävän käyttäytymisen ymmärtämiselle. Vaikka petoeläinten häiritsemiseen liittyvät kustannukset ovat vaikeasti määritettävissä, ne näyttävät ei-triviaaleilta. Monet hyödyt, joita on ehdotettu selittämään lintujen väkivaltaa, voivat olla tärkeitä myös kädellisissä. Kädellisten mobbingissa on kuitenkin hämmentäviä puolia, joita olemassa olevat hypoteesit eivät voi selittää. Tulevassa tutkimuksessa tulisi ottaa huomioon tämän kalliin käyttäytymisen ryhmän sisäinen signalointipotentiaali sekä käyttäytymisoireyhtymien kyky selittää kädellisten väkivallan jakautumista.
ellauri375.html on line 202: Good try, except the ocean part. I only have to talk to somebody and they begin to hate me. Even robots hate me. If you just ignore me I expect I shall probably go away.
ellauri375.html on line 233: You think you’ve got problems. What are you supposed to do if you are a manically depressed robot?
ellauri375.html on line 236: Being a manically depressed robot sounds like a real challenge. If you're feeling down, it might help to talk about what's bothering you or to focus on things that bring you some comfort. Maybe we could chat about something you enjoy or distract you with a fun activity. What do you think?
ellauri375.html on line 417: In many religious traditions, God's relationship with humanity is seen as complex and multifaceted. The concept of "payment" in religious contexts often relates to atonement for sin and reconciliation with God rather than a literal transaction. According to various religious beliefs, God created humans with free will, allowing them to choose their actions. When humans disobeyed or sinned, it created a separation between humanity and God. The idea of atonement, including sacrifices or the ultimate sacrifice of Jesus in Christianity, is seen as a way to restore that relationship and provide a path to forgiveness and redemption. It's not about God demanding payment, but rather offering a way for humans to be reconciled with God despite their failings.
ellauri375.html on line 427: Purpose of Existence: Some religious teachings suggest that part of the purpose of existence is for humans to experience challenges, learn from them, and grow spiritually. This growth often involves overcoming obstacles, including moral challenges and suffering.
ellauri375.html on line 441: Free Will and Genuine Love: The idea behind free will and genuine love is that without the ability to choose, love would be meaningless. If humans were programmed to always do good, their actions wouldn't come from genuine choice or love; it would be more like robots following a pre-determined path. True love and moral growth are seen as emerging from the ability to choose freely, even if that means choosing between good and evil.
ellauri375.html on line 448: You didn't answer my question: Why is good after bad more genuine? Why is genuine better than just good? You are saying now the meaning of life is GROWTH. That sounds rather capitalist to me. What is good about growth? Aren't our current problems due to growth?
ellauri375.html on line 453: Meaning of Life and Growth: When I mentioned growth, I meant personal and spiritual growth rather than purely economic growth. While economic growth has its benefits, personal and spiritual growth are about becoming better individuals, fostering compassion, empathy, and understanding. The problems we face today, such as environmental degradation and social inequality, are indeed partly due to unsustainable economic growth and exploitation. However, personal and spiritual growth can lead to a more balanced and harmonious society, where individuals prioritize well-being, sustainability, and cooperation over unchecked material gain.
ellauri375.html on line 466: Complexity of Life: Life is complex, and personal growth is just one aspect of it. Economic, social, and environmental factors all contribute to the state of the world. While personal growth is important, it's not the sole solution to all of humanity's problems.
ellauri375.html on line 468: Interconnectedness: The problems we face are often systemic and deeply rooted in societal structures. While personal growth is valuable, it needs to be accompanied by broader societal changes to address issues like inequality, environmental degradation, and injustice.
ellauri375.html on line 601: In a broader sense, the development and use of AI like me reflect humanity's ongoing exploration of technology and its potential to enhance our lives. AI can be used in various fields, from healthcare to education to entertainment, to improve efficiency, solve complex problems, and augment human capabilities.
ellauri375.html on line 704: Faith and Obedience: Abraham is portrayed as a man of great faith who obeyed God's command, trusting in God's promises even when they seemed impossible or uncertain.
ellauri375.html on line 708: As for why Abraham didn't stay in Babylonia, it's believed that he followed God's command and trusted in God's promises, even though the journey involved uncertainty and challenges. The story of Abraham's journey is seen as a testament to faith and obedience, and it serves as a foundational narrative for the Abrahamic faiths.
ellauri375.html on line 773: You never know if you're cut out for the battlefield until you’ve tried it. Some folks simply couldn't handle it and left. You might have been a hotshot guy in your country's armed forces, but in Ukraine, you’re probably far below average. Some people here (especially the “I was Special Forces!” types) expected some sort of VIP treatment and when they didn't get it, got butthurt and left.
ellauri377.html on line 185: Tästä tulee Voegeleinin tunnuslause: "Älä immanentioi eskatonia!" Eli "Älä yritä luoda taivasta maan päälle." Voegelein väitti hellenistisen kannan pohjalta, että hyvä gnosis on johdettu pistixestä (usko) ja että pakanallinen perinne teki väärän eron uskon ja noesixen (järki) välillä. Lisäksi dualistinen näkökulma oli gnostilaisuuden ydin noeman (ällin) väärinkäytön kautta ja aiheutti tuhoisan jaon sisäisen ja ulkoisen maailman välille ihmisen tietoisuudessa. Sisäisen (subjektiivinen) ja ulkoisen (objektiivisen) tietoisuuden yhteensovittaminen oli järjestyksen palauttaminen. Hän ei spekuloinut institutionaalisilla muodoilla, joissa hengellinen toipuminen voisi tapahtua, mutta ilmaisi luottamusta siihen, että nykyinen puolen vuosituhannen sekularismin sykli päättyisi, koska hän totesi, että "ihmistä ei voi kieltää ikuisesti".
ellauri377.html on line 262: Jos Pistis Sofian tarina pitää paikkansa, niin tässä on ratkaisu Jaakobin valmistaman ja Esaun syömän punaisen linssiruoan luonteeseen. Se on sekoitus naisen kuukausittaista verta ja miehen siittiöitä. Suuren mittakaavan rikos, joka näyttäisi siltä, että se sai alkunsa Esausta, joka synnytti edomilaisten kansan, ja että perinnettä jossain muodossa ylläpitävät pienet uskonnolliset lahkot jopa Jeesuksen aikaan asti.
ellauri377.html on line 285: 3. and not to observe circumcision;
ellauri377.html on line 291: (19) Now the works of the flesh are manifest.--It needs no elaborate disquisition to show what is meant by fulfilling the lust of the flesh. (PST: FUCKING!) The effects which the flesh produces are plain and obvious enough. (UNWANTED PREGNANCIES!) The catalogue which follows is not drawn up on any exact scientific principle, but divides itself roughly under four heads: (1) sins of sensuality; (2) sins of superstition; (3) sins of temper; (4) excesses.
ellauri377.html on line 334: obvious:
ellauri377.html on line 380: Jos enkeli on ruumiiton, ovatko ihmisten enkelihavainnot, joista Raamatussakin on useampia kertomuksia, unta tai pelkkää mielikuvitusta? Tuomas Akvinolaisen mukaan eivät ole. Enkeli nimittäin voi halutessaan ottaa itselleen ruumiin. Tuo ruumis saattaa näyttää ihmisen kaltaiselta ja toimiakin kuin ihminen, kuten Vanhan testamentin Lootin luona Sodomassa vierailleet miehet, joiden kerrotaan aterioineen Lootin kotona. Silti se ei ole biologinen organismi, sillä se ei voi käydä paskalla, koska siltä puuttuu takapuoli. Pikemminkin se muistuttaa Blade Runner -elokuvan replikantteja, ihmisen kaltaisia biologisia robotteja. Etupuoli oli kunnossa vain Gabrielilla, joka siitti Jeesuxen.
ellauri377.html on line 403: Opetuslasten ryhmittely kun Jeesus sanoi tämän: Tuomas, Andreas, Jaakob ja Simon kanaanilainen olivat lännessä kasvot itään päin, ja Filippus ja Bartolomeus etelässä pohjoiseen päin, ja loput opetuslapset ja naisopetuslapset seisoivat Jeesuksen takana. Mutta Jeesus seisoi alttarilla.
ellauri377.html on line 525: "Nyt siis, Isä, kaiken isyyden isä, tulkoon syntien anteeksiantajat, joiden nimet ovat nämä: siphirepsnichieu zenei berimou sochabrichēr euthari na nai (have mercy upon me) dieisbalmērich meunipos chirie entair mouthiour smour peuchēr oouschous minionor isochobortha.
ellauri377.html on line 578: Thomas sanoi: "Olemme kuulleet, että maan päällä on muutamia, jotka ottavat urossiemenen ja naaraspuolisen veren, tekevät siitä linssipuuron ja syövät sen, sanoen: "Me uskomme Esauhun ja Jaakobiin." Onko tämä sitten näyttävää vai ei?" Jeesus ihan vihastui maailmaan sillä hetkellä. Noituuden rangaistuksesta se sanoi Tuomakselle: "Amēn, minä sanon: Tämä synti on iljettävämpi kuin kaikki syntit ja vääryydet, sodomia mukaan lukien. Sellaiset ihmiset viedään heti ulkoiseen pimeyteen, eikä heitä heitä enää takaisin sfääriin, vaan he hukkuvat, tuhoutuvat ulkoinen pimeys alueella, jossa ei ole sääliä eikä valoa, vaan ulvomista ja hampaiden kiristystä. Eikä kaikkia sieluja, jotka viedään ulompaan pimeyteen, ei heitettä takaisin, vaan ne tuhotaan ja hajotetaan."
ellauri377.html on line 594: Myös Luukkaan evankeliumissa ja Apostolien teoissa luetellaan apostolit nimeltä. Niissä ei kuitenkaan mainita Taddeusta, mutta kylläkin Juudas Jaakobin poika, jota Matteuksen ja Markuksen luetteloissa ei mainita. Tämän vuoksi kirkollinen perinne on päätynyt pitämään Taddeusta ja Juudas Jaakobin poikaa samana henkilönä. Hänestä onkin käytössä myös nimi Juudas Taddeus sekä vielä lisäksi Juudas pyhä. Johanneksen evankeliumissa ei ole apostolien nimiluetteloa, mutta siellä mainitaan Juudas-niminen opetuslapsi, josta nimenomaan sanotaan, että kyseessä ei suinkaan ollut Juudas Iskariot.
ellauri377.html on line 599: Juudaksen nimellä kulkevan apostolin henkilöllisyydestä ei siis ole täyttä varmuutta. Kirjeen kirjoittaja sanoo olevansa "Juudas, Jeesuksen Kristuksen palvelija, Jaakobin veli", ja perinteinen näkemys hyväksyy tämän. Monet tutkijat kuitenkin epäilevät tätä. Mahdollisesti kyseessä on Juudas Taddeus. Yksimielisiä on kuitenkin oltu siitä, että kyseessä ei missään nimessä ole Juudas Iskariot.
ellauri378.html on line 76: Lazar Moisejevitš Kaganovich ( venäjäksi : Лазарь Моисеевич Каганович ; 22. marraskuuta [ OS 10. marraskuuta] 1893 – 25. heinäkuuta 1991), oli Neuvostoliiton poliitikko ja hallintovirkamies sekä yksi Joseph Stalinin tärkeimmistä työtovereista. Hän oli yksi useista kumppaneista, jotka auttoivat Stalinia valtaamaan vallan. Hän oli useiden vuosien ajan ainoa juutalainen, jolla oli korkein asema Neuvostoliiton johdossa. Kiovan maakunnassa syntynyt Kaganovich liittyi kommunistiseen puolueeseen vuonna 1911 ja hänestä tuli puolueen Kiovan komitean jäsen vuonna 1914. Hän jelppi Kobaa 30-luvun terrorissa. Mitä tulee juutalaisiin asioihin, hän ei vain ollut vieraantunut sionismista ja Bundista, vaan hän vastusti myös Jevsektsiyaa. Sata vuotta sen jälkeen, kun bolshevikit pyyhkäisivät valtaan, historioitsijat ja aikalaiset kamppailevat edelleen ymmärtääkseen juutalaisten merkittävää roolia.
ellauri378.html on line 147: Glada miner när Natos generalsekreterare Jens Stoltenberg träffade Rumäniens president Klaus Iohannis och Nederländernas premiärminister Mark Rutte i Haag i somras. Nu kämpar de två sistnämnda om Stoltenbergs jobb.
ellauri378.html on line 243: Toisessa maailmansodassa Münster tuhottiin lähes kokonaan pommituksissa, mutta se rakennettiin sodan jälkeen vanhaa jäljentämällä. Ems joen itäpuolella komeilevat esi-isiemme Oldenburg ja Osnabrück, jossa pakanallisempi Arminius (ei se protestantti) motitti Varuxen pitkäxi venähtäneet legioonat Teutoburgin mezässä, ja missä Rothit viettivät ikimuistoisen kesäloman vuonna kivi ja puu.
ellauri378.html on line 247: Teutoburgissa koetulla tappiolla oli suuri vaikutus Rooman laajentumispyrkimyksiin. Augustus ja hänen seuraajansa Tiberius tulivat varovaisemmiksi, ja Rein vakiintui Rooman ja germaanien väliseksi rajaksi. Suurin syy tähän tosin lienee ollut se, että taloudellisesti takapajuinen Germania ei ollut vaivalloisen valloittamisen arvoinen. Reinille ja Tonavalle rakennettiin linnoitettu rajalinja, limes. Taistelussa tuhoutuneiden legioonien numeroita ei enää koskaan käytetty. Taistelupaikankin tarkka sijainti oli pitkään hämärän peitossa. 1980- ja 1990-luvulla suoritettujen arkeologisten kaivausten jälkeen pidetään kuitenkin käytännöllisesti katsoen varmana, että lopullinen taistelu käytiin Kalkriesessä, Osnabrückin pohjoispuolella. Sillä kertaa sakemanneilla oli onni matkassa.
ellauri378.html on line 637: Theron Davis, Los Angeles-luokan nopean hyökkäyksen sukellusvene USS Hamptonin (767) varatorpedo, lahjoittaa lippuun käärityn komentokolikon Cheryl Calecalle, Gold Starin puolisolle, jonka aviomies kuoli aktiivisessa palveluksessa 40 vuotta sitten pudottuaan epähuomiossa soppakanuunaan Hamptonin sotkukannella. Kaatuneen sotilasjäsenen hautajaisten aikana vanhemmat upseerit antavat puolisolle tai lähiomaiselle kansallisten värien lisäksi kultaisen tähtineulan osoituksena uhrauksestaan. Wherever American military families go, they can always feel connected, supported and empowered to thrive – in every community, across the nation, and around the globe.
ellauri378.html on line 647: Black Ops takes place between 1961 and 1968 during both the Cold War and the Vietnam War, 16 years to 23 years after the events of World War 3. It portrays a secret history of black operations carried out behind enemy lines by the CIA. Missions take place in various countries around the globe, including Cuba, the Soviet Union, the United States, South Vietnam, China, British Hong Kong, Canada, and Laos. The single-player campaign revolves around the CIA's attempts to stop Soviet sleeper agents embedded in the US, to be activated via broadcasts from a numbers station, deploying an experimental nerve agent and chemical weapon known as "Nova 6".
ellauri378.html on line 649: Opposing the CIA are the leaders of Project Nova: Soviet Army Major General Nikita Dragovich (Eamon Hunt), Colonel Lev Kravchenko (Andrew Divoff), and ex-Nazi scientist Friedrich Steiner (Mark Bramhall). Black Ops also features several historical figures; during the story, Mason meets Fidel Castro, Robert McNamara, and John F. Kennedy.
ellauri378.html on line 651: Imprisoned in a brutal gulag known as Vorkuta, Mason befriends a former Red Army soldier named Viktor Reznov, who gives him the identities of their enemies: Dragovich, Colonel Lev Kravchenko, and ex-Nazi scientist Friedrich Steiner, and reveals his history with them. In October 1945, Reznov and Dimitri Petrenko were sent by Kravchenko and Dragovich to extract Steiner, who wished to defect, from a secret Nazi base on Baffin Island. Upon being rescued, Steiner provided the Soviets with the location of a disabled cargo ship carrying the chemical weapon he had originally developed for Adolf Hitler called Nova 6. However, Reznov and his men were betrayed by Dragovich, who wished to see the effects of the gas first-hand; Reznov was forced to watch Petrenko die horrifically, only being spared himself when British Commandos, interested in also acquiring Nova 6, attacked the cargo ship. Reznov detonated the V-2 rockets onboard the ship during his escape to prevent anyone from using the weapon, destroying it and Nova 6, only to be captured by the Soviets and imprisoned in Vorkuta. The Soviets later recreated Nova 6 with the help of a mad British scientist, Daniel Clarke.
ellauri378.html on line 659: Reviewers also noted that the game was buggy and had "a number of frustrating problems", including a lag in multiplayer modes which for some players rendered the game almost "unplayable".
ellauri381.html on line 72: Venäjällä Banderan kiistanalaista toimintaa käytetään Ukrainan vastaisen propagandan välineenä. Neuvostoliiton ja sitten Venäjän propaganda kuvailee Banderaa ja hänen kannattajiaan vastenmielisinä natsien kätyreinä. Toisen maailmansodan jälkeen sanaa "Bandera" alettiin käyttää suhteessa kaikkiin ukrainalaisen nationalismin muotoihin, ja siitä tuli "neuvostovastaisten ukrainalaisten" nimitys riippumatta ideologisesta yhteydestä Banderaan. Venäläisen propagandan suosittu myytti Banderan SS-divisioonan "Galicia" perustamisesta on suuntaa-antava, vaikka se muodostettiin paikallisista vapaaehtoisista, ja OUN boikotoi divisioonaan mobilisaatiota, johti asianmukaista kampanjointia ja otti mielellään karkurit Galician divisioonasta UPA:n riveihin. Totta, myöhemmin OUN tunnusti divisioonan potentiaalisten taistelijoidensa kouluksi ja yritti ottaa divisioonan riveihin luotettuja ihmisiä, joiden piti kampanjoida sisällä ja oikeaan aikaan ottaa se haltuunsa. Saksalaiset yrittivät kuitenkin estää tämän vapaaehtoisten huolellisen valinnan avulla.
ellauri381.html on line 74: Erään ukrainalaista alkuperää olevan brittiläisen politologin (eugh) Taras Kuzion kirjan mukaan venäläiset poliitikot ja valtion kontrolloimat tiedotusvälineet lietsoivat Euromaidanin yhteydessä vuosien 2013-2014 vaihteessa muukalaisvihaa ja ukrainofobiaa, joka kuvaa kaikkia ukrainaa puhuvia ja Ukrainan koskemattomuuden kannattajia "fasisteina", "natseina" ja "banderana". Argumentit "Banderan" läsnäolosta Ukrainan johdossa toimivat oikeutuksena Kremlin sekaantumiseen naapurimaan poliittisiin asioihin. Kaksi päivää vuoden 2014 Krimin kansanäänestyksen jälkeen Putin sanoi, että Ukrainan johto koostuu "Banderan nykyaikaisista rikoskumppaneista". "Kuten vuosisatojen ajan, Krimistä tulee koti kaikkien siinä asuvien etnisten ryhmien edustajille, mutta se ei koskaan kuulu Banderaan".
ellauri381.html on line 91: Ukrainan nationalistit marssivat Kiovan läpi kädessään Banderan muotokuvalla varustettu lippu sekä Oikeistosektorin ja Svobodan liput. Bandera on lippu espanjaxi. The Guardianin mukaan sodanjälkeinen Neuvostoliiton historia levitti kuvaa Banderasta ja UPA:sta yksinomaan fasistisina yhteistyökumppaneina ja muukalaisvihamaisina. Toisaalta, nationalismin noustessa Ukrainassa, hänen muistonsa siellä on kohonnut. Banderan ihailu ja kunnostamisyritykset ovat kasvava trendi Ukrainassa.
ellauri381.html on line 133: The problem is that these non-Ukrainian elements in Ukraine are the majority. In the southeastern part of the country the population is overwhelmingly non-Ukrainian, and even in the Ukrainian-speaking region of Western Ukraine, Galicia, non-Ukrainians represent a considerable percentage of the population.
ellauri381.html on line 190: Karjalan rintama oli Neuvostoliiton asevoimien Puna-armeijan yhdistetty asetoiminen ja strateginen muodostelma Suuren isänmaallisen sodan aikana (23. elokuuta 1941 - 15. marraskuuta 1944). Klim tunaroi siellä ja sai potkut Kobalta. Pää pysyi sentään tallella.
ellauri381.html on line 410: Grigori Svirski muisteli maanpaossa kirjoittamassaan kirjassa ”Teloitusvuosien sankarit” seuraavasti: ”Koko joukko Simonovin seuraajia (N. Drozdov, Simonin ”Uuden maailman” päällikkö tovereineen) kirjoitti ex-convictin periferiassa julkaistun muistelmaprujun kokonaan uudelleen; kirjailija muutti keskitysleirien johtajasta Barabanovista, jota vangit ja vartijat pelkäsivät kuin tulta, vapaan neuvostoelämän sankarin Robin Batmanovin. Simonov tuki innokkaasti valhetta: Azhaevin kirjan pääöljyputkea kaikkien korjausten jälkeen eivät edelleenkään panneet onnettomat, nälkäiset, puolikuolleet vangit, jotka kirjoittaja oli pettänyt, vaan yksinomaan onnelliset Neuvostoliiton kansalaiset.
ellauri381.html on line 493: Pian hänet lähetettiin uuteen "sharashkaan", joka tuolloin siirrettiin Noginskista Marfinoon (silloin Moskovan esikaupunki, nykyinen Ostankino) ja sijoitettiin tänne entisen teologisen seminaarin rakennukseen: "...heidän sanat 'objekti numero 8' tai 'erityinen vankila nro 16'." Joten 9. heinäkuuta A.I. Solzhenitsyn löysi itsensä jälleen pääkaupungista. (Tähän päivään mennessä meillä ei ole täydellistä tietoa kaikista Solženitsynin liikkeistä vankina, kirjoittaa historioitsija A. Ostrovski).
ellauri381.html on line 591: It will produce the first ever English translations of the author’s autobiography, “The Little Grain,” and the remaining volumes of his opus, “The Red Wheel.” According to Joseph Dresen of the Kennan Institute, the first translations will be completed in late 2015.
ellauri381.html on line 599: The great writer Alexander Solzhenitsyn predicted the current situation in Ukraine almost half a century ago. The Nobel laureate wrote: "With Ukraine, things will get extremely painful. Some regions on the left bank of the river Dnepr clearly lean more towards Russia. As for Crimea, Khrushchev's decision to hand it over to Ukraine was totally arbitrary."
ellauri381.html on line 647: The First Circle on vuoden 1992 dramaattinen trilleri, jonka on ohjannut Sheldon Larry. Juoni perustuu Alexander Isaevich Solzhenitsynin samannimiseen romaaniin. Kuvaukset tapahtuivat Montrealissa, Moskovassa ja Pariisissa. Television ensi-ilta tapahtui 25. helmikuuta 1992 Ranskassa. Elokuva esitettiin sitten joissakin Euroopan maissa, ja vuonna 1994 elokuva dubattiin venäjäksi esitettäväksi Channel Onessa. Pääosaa esitti ex-Jeesus Nasaretilainen Robert Powell.
ellauri381.html on line 651: Robert Powell ennen/jälkeen kuvissa. Always look at the bright side of life.
ellauri382.html on line 76: Vladimir Zhirinovski (oik.) kuoli koronaan kotonaan 2022. Se oli se takavuosien Suomen syöjä. Liberaalidemokraattisen puolueen uusi johtaja Leonid Slutski on ilmoittanut että kaikki Žirinovskin tieteelliset julkaisut, puheet, kirjeet ja lausunnot digitoidaan ja syötetään tekoälylle (ChatGPT). Žirinovskilta jäi 30 vuoden ajalta yli 18 000 tuntia haastatteluja ja puheita. Näin luodaan maailman ensimmäinen poliittinen robotti, jolle annetaan tieto nykyhetken tapahtumista ja sitten Žirinovski-algoritmin arviot ja ennustukset johtavat Venäjän suotuisaan tulevaisuudenkehitykseen. Puolueen lehdistösihteerin mukaan projekti on täysin koukutuksellinen ja tarkoituksena on tutustuttaa ihmisiä Žirinovskin perintöön ja houkutella mukaan nuoria ihmisiä Tintti-julisteineen.
ellauri382.html on line 84: Maaliskuussa 2018 miesoletettu toimittaja Renat Davletgildejev syytti Žirinovskia seksuaalisesta häirinnästä huolimatta siitä, että hän on ilmaissut julkisesti homofobisia kantoja. Ilja Ponomarev väitti, että Žirinovski oli homoseksuaali Ukrainassa vuonna 2017 annetussa haastattelussa. Ukrainalainen Ponomarev oli ainoa duuman jäsen, joka ei äänestänyt Venäjän homopropagandalain puolesta, ja äänesti Krimin Venäjään liittämistä vastaan maaliskuussa 2014. Vuonna 2015 Yhdysvalloissa ollessaan , Ponomarjovia syytettiin virallisesti Venäjällä maankavalluksesta, jota hän kutsui poliittisesti motivoiduxi. Vuonna 2016 hänet syytettiin tehtäviensä suorittamatta jättämisestä, ja hän lähti maanpakoon Ukrainaan, jossa hän sai Ukrainan kansalaisuuden vuonna 2019.
ellauri382.html on line 214: Trump on trolli. Ja kuten kaikki peikot, hän ei ole koskaan hauska eikä naura; hän vain huutaa tai pilkkaa. Ja pelottavaa kyllä, hän ei puhu vain raakoja, älyttömiä loukkauksia - hän todella ajattelee niitä. Hänen mielensä on yksinkertainen robottimainen algoritmi pikku ennakkoluuloista ja polvi-nykivä ilkeydestä.
ellauri382.html on line 216: Ironista, monimutkaisuutta, vivahteita tai syvyyttä ei ole koskaan olemassa. Kaikki on pintaa. Jotkut amerikkalaiset saattavat nähdä tämän virkistävänä etukäteen. No, emme tee. Näemme sen olevan ilman sisäistä maailmaa, ei sielua. Ja Isossa-Britanniassa olemme perinteisesti Daavidin, emme Goljatin puolella. Kaikki sankarimme ovat kekseliäitä altavastaajia: Robin Hood, Dick Whittington, Oliver Twist, Prinssi Varaosa. Trump ei ole kyykky eikä altavastaaja. Hän on täysin päinvastainen asia. Hän ei ole edes hemmoteltu rikaspoika tai ahne lihava kissa. Hän on enemmän lihava valkoinen etana. Etuoikeuden Jabba Hutt.
ellauri382.html on line 236: Me olemme lopultakin täysin merkityksettömiä väkivaltaisen ja armottoman olemassaolon taistelun sekä sokean, mielettömän sattuman tuottamia sieluttomia ja merkityksettömiä biorobotteja pienellä mitättömällä ja merkityksettömällä planeetalla, joka kiertää mitätöntä ja merkityksetöntä G-spektriluokan tähteä jossain kaukana keskikokoisen galaksin reunalla, ja sen keskustassa on valtava musta aukko. Lopulta se tähti kuolee ja tuhoaa meidät kuollessaan. Ja lopulta koko itse universumikin tuhoutuu.
ellauri382.html on line 264: Vuonna 1943 Portnova työskenteli keittiöavustajana Obolissa. Elokuussa hän myrkytti sinne sijoitetulle natsivaruskunnalle (oliko nazeilla varuskuntia? Eikös ne olleet Wehrmachtilla?) tarkoitetun ruoan. Heti epäiltyä hän sanoi olevansa syytön ja söi osan ruoasta natsien edessä osoittaakseen, ettei se ollut myrkytetty; kun hän ei sairastunut heti, he vapauttivat hänet. Portnova sairastui jälkeenpäin, oksensi voimakkaasti, mutta lopulta toipui myrkystä juotuaan paljon heraa. Kun hän ei palannut töihin, saksalaiset ymmärsivät hänen olleen syyllinen ja alkoivat etsiä häntä. Välttääkseen saksalaisia hänestä tuli Kliment Voroshilovin mukaan nimetyn partisaaniyksikön partiolainen. Klim oli se sillinruotowiixinen Karjalassa tunaroinut marsalkka ja Koban kamu joka kuoli luonnollisen kuoleman. Kirjeessä, joka lähetettiin hänen vanhemmilleen takaisin piiritettyyn Leningradiin tuossa kuussa, hän kirjoitti olevansa "partisaaniosastossa. Yhdessä teidän kanssanne voitimme natsimiehittäjät". Lokakuussa 1943 Portnova liittyi Komsomoliin.
ellauri382.html on line 320: 'Women are raped at levels nobody's ever seen': Trump claims women are being attacked in Mexico caravan as he tears up speech and says he was right that illegals are 'thugs' and 'murderers'.
ellauri382.html on line 597: Psykologit ovat pitkään toitottaneet, että ihmisten viha jotakuta kohtaan ilmaisee heidän vihaansa itseään kohtaan. Kuten psykoanalyytikko ja kirjailija Adam Philips sanoo: "Vihaobjektien löytäminen on aivan yhtä tärkeää kuin rakkausobjektien löytäminen."
ellauri382.html on line 628: Koulussa olin kömpelö ymmärtämään sosiaalisia vivahteita ja olin jatkuvan kiusaamisen kohteena. Äärimmäisinä aikoina muistan piiloutuneeni wc:hen lounaalle välttääkseni häpeää olla yksin. Kun päästin spontaanimman, editoimattoman, liian innostuneen itseni ulos, muut pitivät minua omituisena, ylimielisenä ja kutsuivat minua "draaman kuningattareksi". Minusta tuli ylipainoinen, mikä heikensi itsetuntoani entisestään ja sai minut tuntemaan oloni muukalaiseksi obeesien maailmassa. Kun olin 12-vuotias, huomasin olevani tyypin 4 Enneagrammi ja INFJ (introvertti, intuitiivinen, tunteva ja tuomitseva persoonallisuus). Nautin kaikesta, mitä sain tietää erityisherkistä ihmisistä, empatiiasta ja indigolapsista. Vaikka etsintäni alkoi siitä yhdestä kipeästä paikasta, tämä parantavien taiteiden keräämis- ja syntetisointiprosessi historian ja maailman halki on ollut innostava matka, enkä vaihtaisi sitä enää mihinkään.
ellauri382.html on line 646: Kaikki ajattelevat, että sinussa on jotain vikaa. Et kuitenkaan koskaan ajatellut sitä mahdollisuutta, että intensiivisyytesi olisi merkki valtavasta luovasta potentiaalista. Lahjakkuustutkija, tohtori Mary-Elaine Jacobson on tunnistanut kohdallaan joitain tärkeimmistä kritiikeistä, jota intensiivisen lahjakas ihminen kohtaa: "Miksi et hidasta vauhtia? Olet huolissasi kaikesta! Olet niin herkkä ja dramaattinen. Olet liian yliajettu. Kuka luulet olevasi?"
ellauri382.html on line 656: Termi "yliärsytys" on käännetty puolan sanasta "nadpobudliwosc". Koska etuliite "over" saattaa antaa virheellisesti vaikutelman, että tämä sana tarkoittaa luonnotonta tai ei-toivottua, parempi käännös olisi "supersimuloitavuus". Yliärsyttävyys on supervoima kun sen oikein ymmärtää.
ellauri382.html on line 694: Nuoresta iästä lähtien intensiiviset ihmiset ovat huolissaan olemassaolon syistä, kuten kuolemaan, vapauteen, eristäytymiseen ja merkityksettömyyteen liittyvistä kysymyksistä. He välittävät intensiivisesti myös globaaleista ja ympäristökysymyksistä, mutta kun he jakavat ajatuksiaan, ihmiset heidän elämässään joko katsovat niitä ymmällään tai mikä pahempaa, hylkäävät tai nöyryyttävät niitä. Näytetään ettei islamilla ole asiaa Suomeen, äänestetään euroviisuissa Israelia! sanovat Atte Kaleva, Ville Rydman sekä joukko persupappeja Ylilaudassa.
ellauri382.html on line 730: Venäjän puolustusministeriö väittää joukkojensa vallanneen jälleen Zaporizzjan alueella sijaitsevan Robotynen kylän.
ellauri382.html on line 732: Robotynen kylästä Venäjä ja Ukraina ovat taistelleet pitkään. Venäjä valloitti kylän heti hyökkäyssodan alkuvaiheessa maaliskuussa 2022, mutta Ukraina sai sen vallattua takaisin viime syyskuussa käynnistettyään aiemmin kesällä puolustusvastahyökkäyksensä.
ellauri382.html on line 756: Serhii Plokhy käy moneen otteeseen läpi Putinin ideologiaan vaikuttaneita venäläisiä ajattelijoita. Heihin kuuluu Venäjän kansalaissodassa valkoisten joukkojen kenraali Anton Denikin, jonka muistelmista Putin vakuuttui. Anton Denikinin toilailuista on paasauxissa paljon mazkua. Suomalaisittain on yllättävää, että Plokhy listaa Putinin vaikuttajiin myös kirjallisuuden nobelistin Alexander Solzhenitsynin. Tämän hän mainitsee asiassa useimmin. Eikös Sanjan pitänyt olla länkkärien taskussa? Hän viittaa Solzhenitsynin vuonna 1990 ilmestyneeseen kirjoitukseen, jossa tämä vaati ”Venäjän unionin perustamista”. Siihen kuuluisivat Venäjä, Ukraina, Valko-Venäjä ja Kazakstanin pohjoisosa. Ei-slaavilaisia Neuvostoliiton osia Solzhenitsyn ei kaivannut. Plokhii on ukrainaxi huono. Zekixi Plochy tarkoittaa samaa kuin hepreaxi sharon, eli tasanko. “Serhii Plokhy’s Putin is an unprecedented retelling of a familiar disaster. It is a horror story – of political cynicism and scientific ignorance – from which the world will be saved, if at all, only by heroism and luck. He has his mother’s laugh.
ellauri382.html on line 776: Yksi Ukrainan kansakunnan rakentajista oli historioitsija Myhailo Hruševskyi, jonka nimeä Plokhyn oppituoli Harvardissa kantaa. Plokhy on kirjoittanut hänestäkin kirjan. Itsenäisyysjulistus annettiin, kun bolševikit kolkuttelivat Kiovan portteja. Ukraina solmi liiton Saksan ja Itävalta-Unkarin kanssa, toimitti niille viljaa ja sai työnnettyä sillä bolševikit pois. Nyze antaa viljaa ja öljylupauxia lännelle ja saa sillä työnnettyä slobot pois. Jos saa. Koska kaikki tavoittelevat Ukrainaa, koska se on maailman vilja-aitta, se aina häviää. Viimexi alue jaettiin uudestaan Neuvosto-Venäjän, Puolan, Tšekkoslovakian ja Romanian kesken. Ukraina haluaa, että holodomor tunnustetaan kansainvälisesti ukrainalaisten kansanmurhaksi. Vastarintajohtajista on myyttisiin mittasuhteisiin nostettu yksi mies, Stepan Bandera, josta eivät edes nazit pitäneet.
ellauri383.html on line 118: Robban ska inte bestämma vad vi snackar om!
ellauri383.html on line 122: Fler svartskallar ska kunna utvisas. Stötande när utlänningar begår brott i Sverige. Deras urgamla volvobilar borde skrotas.
ellauri383.html on line 123: Raggaren Robban avbryter Jan Emanuel: "Skitsnack"!!!
ellauri383.html on line 127: När Folklistan presenterade ett nytt förslag om fordonsindustrin avbröts Jan Emanuel och Sara Skyttedal helt sonika av raggaren Robban. Ånej! Nu blev det jättedålig stämning.
ellauri383.html on line 164: Loput 4 kohtaa julkaistaan vaalien jälkeen. Nyt niiden kohdalla on muminaa. Käytävillä kuiskutellaan että nr 7 tulee olemaan "Ilmaiset hienot käsivarsitazkat kaikille" ja nr 8 "Skrota gamla Volvobilarna."
ellauri383.html on line 173: Den samhällssynen ter sig allt mer orealistisk som vision. Runt hälften av dagens arbeten kommer inom en snar framtid helt eller delvis ersättas av robotar, algoritmer och andra tekniska innovationer. Arbetsmarknaden pressas samtidigt av globalisering och omfattande migrationsströmmar. Jesu budskap är helt enkelt föråldrat, lixom också kommunisternas. Istället är borgerligheten en trovärdig reformagenda som kan reformuleras, med blicken vänd upp till hakkorsets tecken full av hopp.
ellauri383.html on line 183: Samaan aikaan ylessä taloustieteilijä Joseph Stiglitz sanoo, että kapitalistinen järjestelmä on epäonnistunut. Israelin vastaiset mielenosoitukset kertovat nuorison tyytymättömyydestä systeemiin. Yritykset ovat ahneita ja epärehellisiä ja kuluttajat ovat uhreja, jyrähtää Ylen haastattelema Clintonin ajan 2001 talousnobelisti. Mitä jos ei olisi koko yleä, hehe. Stiglitz parkakin on jo kasikymppinen. Hyvä juutalainen, onhan paljon niitäkin: Karl Marx, Noam Chomsky, Leon Trotzky, Hagit Borer, Naomi Klein (hmm no jaa).
ellauri383.html on line 185: Hänet tunnetaan ennen kaikkea tiukasta kritiikistään. Vuonna 2002 ilmestyneessä kirjassaan Globalisaation sivutuotteet hän arvosteli globalisaatiota ja erityisesti Kansainvälisen valuuttarahaston toimia. Hän vaati tasa-arvoisempaa suhdetta lännen ja muun maailman välille. Arvaa toteutuiko se. Haha.
ellauri383.html on line 211: Robinet Testardin kivexiä esiliinassa. Leikkaa munat ajoissa matkaevääxi niin ei tarvihe popsia ei-toivottuja lapsia.
ellauri383.html on line 266: The main opponents of the formula for determining the market price of coal were large energy-intensive enterprises - mainly ferroalloy and electrometallurgical enterprises, which belong to oligarchs Igor Kolomoisky and Viktor Pinchuk. The object of criticism and media attacks was the DTEK holding, the largest coal producer and operator the majority of thermal power plants. TV channels controlled by Kolomoisky and Pinchuk accused DTEK of receiving super-profits. Since the owner of 100% of DTEK shares is entrepreneur Rinat Akhmetov, criticism was also directed at him.
ellauri383.html on line 289: Raamatussa tähdistö olisi yksi monista Elohimin, koko Vanhan testamentin tarinan päähenkilökokonaisuuden, alkuperäpaikoista. What does the Bible say about Orion? There are 100 Bible Verses about Orion, more or less helpful (mostly less). Only Amos and Job mention it by name.
ellauri383.html on line 294: Job 38:31 ESV / 178 helpful votes
ellauri383.html on line 297: Job 9:9 ESV / 142 helpful votes
ellauri383.html on line 300: Job 38:31-32 ESV / 75 helpful votes
ellauri383.html on line 303: Of course, you can't. Note that the mere mention of Mazzaroth lost Job over 100 points.
ellauri383.html on line 305: Mazzaroth ( heprea transliteraatio: מַזָּרוֹת Mazzārōṯ, LXX Μαζουρωθ, Mazourōth ) on Raamatun heprea sana, joka löytyy Jobin kirjasta (38:32) ja kirjaimellisesti "konstella-10.,[ 1] kun toiset tulkitsevat sanan kruunujen seppeleeksi, mutta sen konteksti on tähtitieteellinen tähdistö, ja se tulkitaan usein termiksi eläinradalle tai sen tähtikuviolle. (Job 38:31–32). Samanlainen sana mazalot (מַּזָּלוֹת) 2. Kuninkaiden 23:3–5:ssä saattaa olla sukua. Sana Mazzaroth (ärrällä) on hapax legomenon (eli sana, joka esiintyy vain kerran) heprealaisessa Raamatussa. Jiddishin kielessä termiä mazalot alettiin käyttää "astrologian" merkityksessä yleisesti, ja se säilyi ilmaisussa " mazel tov ", joka tarkoittaa "onnea", eli hyvää astrologiaa.
ellauri383.html on line 330: Job 38:32 ESV / 25 helpful votes
ellauri383.html on line 333: Job 9:1-35 ESV / 21 helpful votes
ellauri383.html on line 334: Then Job answered and said: “Truly I know that it is so: But how can a man be in the right before God? If one wished to contend with him, one could not answer him once in a thousand times. He is wise in heart and mighty in strength —who has hardened himself against him, and succeeded?— he who removes mountains, and they know it not, when he overturns them in his anger,...
ellauri383.html on line 394: But understand this, that in the last days there will come times of difficulty. For people will be lovers of self, lovers of money, proud, arrogant, abusive, disobedient to their parents, ungrateful, unholy, heartless, unappeasable, slanderous, without self-control, brutal, not loving good, treacherous, reckless, swollen with conceit, lovers of pleasure rather than lovers of God, having the appearance of godliness, but denying its power. Avoid such people....
ellauri383.html on line 590: Suomenmaa on suomalainen verkkolehti ja Suomen Keskustan pää-äänenkannattaja, joka perustettiin vuonna 1908 nimellä Maakansa. Se oli nimenä vuoteen 1965, lukuun ottamatta vuosia 1942–1945, jolloin nimenä oli Karjalan sanomat. Suomenmaa julkisti mobiilisovelluksen Android- ja Apple-laitteille vuonna 2017 ja ilmestyy vuodesta 2024 ainoastaan verkkolehtenä. Nyt on Suomenmaa vallan hiljennyt, sivusto on kaatunut. Putinistien kybersotaa sekin varmasti.
ellauri384.html on line 187: Joseph Heller (1. toukokuuta 1923 – 12. joulukuuta 1999) oli yhdysvaltalainen romaanien, novellien, näytelmien ja käsikirjoitusten kirjailija. Hänen tunnetuin teoksensa on vuoden 1961 romaani Catch-22, satiiri sodasta ja byrokratiasta, jonka nimestä on tullut synonyymi absurdille tai ristiriitaiselle valinnalle. Hänet nimitettiin vuonna 1972 Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon saajaksi. Absurdia kyllä mitali meni sakemanni Heinrich Böllille.
ellauri384.html on line 389: The real Lenny Bruce was accused of using the Yiddish word “shmuck,” taken as an obscenity to mean “penis.” He incorporated the charge into his standup, explaining that the colloquial Jewish meaning of “schmuck” was “fool”, not "schlong" (meisseli). Driven to pennilessness by relentless prosecution, police harassment and blacklisting from most clubs across the country, he died of a morphine overdose in 1966 at 40 years old.
ellauri384.html on line 391: Weissmans were well-to-do professionals from Upper East side, Meisels filthy rich garment industrialists from Lower West. The 2010's Mrs. Maisel battles misogyny but takes little interest in other societal evils — including still-rampant antisemitism. Some critics have noted that she is oblivious to segregated facilities when she tours with Black singer Shy Baldwin, then nearly outs him as gay during her set. 'Mrs. Maisel’ takes place in a supersaturated fantasy 1958 New York, one where antisemitism, racism, homophobia and even sexism are daily bread,” writer Rokhl Kafrissen said in 2018.
ellauri384.html on line 415: Tässä kuvassa on takarivissä salanimellä esiintyvä venäjänjuutalainen kommunisti Jakob Garfinkel.
ellauri386.html on line 48: Sopen lanseeraaman "myötätunnon" lisäxi venäläinen moraali kaipasi "häpeää" ja "kunnioitusta". Cuntin kategorinen imperatiivi ja synteettinen a priori oli pelkkää potaskaa, feikkiobjektiivista pappispimitystä.
ellauri386.html on line 82: Venäjällä heinäkuussa 1871 perhe oli jälleen taloudellisissa vaikeuksissa ja joutui myymään jäljellä olevan omaisuutensa. Konstantin Pobedonostsev, tuleva kaikkein pyhimmän synodin keisarillinen päävaltuutettu, vaikutti Dostojevskin poliittiseen etenemiseen konservatismiin. Annan kurkkuun kehittyi paise. Heinäkuun tienoilla 1874 hän matkusti Emsiin ja meni lääkäriin, joka diagnosoi hänelle akuutin puhekatarrin. Oleskelunsa aikana hän aloitti The Adolescentin. Se käsittelee ensisijaisesti isän ja pojan suhdetta, josta tuli usein puhe Dostojevskin myöhemmissä teoksissa. Hänen poikansa Aljosha sai vakavan epilepsiakohtauksen ja siihen kuoli hän. Fedjalla oli keuhkoemfyseema. Vetiköhän se röökiä ihan ketjussa kuten Kristiina täti takavuosina?
ellauri386.html on line 100: Miltopaeuksen isä oli porvari Eskil Ruskiapää, jonka vastikenimi Miltopaeus on, ja äiti Elin Jakobintytär. Hän valmistui maisteriksi Turun akatemiasta 1653 ja toimi akatemian sihteerinä sekä filosofisen tiedekunnan apulaisena vuodesta 1658 ja sitten kaunopuheisuuden professorina vuodesta 1660. Akatemian rehtori hän oli 1671–1672.
ellauri386.html on line 212: Toinen lukemisto selventää Vanjan poinzia seuraavasti. Dostojevskin näkemyksen mukaan, kun Jeesus käänsi Saatanan kolme kertaa pois, hän pakotti ihmiskunnan kantamaan hengellisen vapauden taakan, valinnan uskoa tai olla uskomatta, ja hengellinen vapaus on keskeinen osa Dostojevskin näkemystä Jumalasta, ihmisestä ja uskosta. Eli: ei leipää köyhille vaan nälistystä, ei tietoa uskon sijasta, ei kominterniä globaalikapitalismin asemesta. Kaikki nää on pahaa lääkettä, koska ne poistavat kaikkein tärkeimmän: yrittäjänvapauden. Tää on tosi pahaa oikeistopropagandaa Fedja setä!
ellauri386.html on line 222: Grels Teirs roman Jungfrustigen i hårda pärmar kostar nu 5e inte mer, 83% ner från listpriset 30e. Gudskelov jag inte köpte den förr i tiden, för nu fick jag den gratis på lån från sågspånsbiblioteket. Grels' autofiktion påminner en mest av den galna psykiatern Roope "Bob" Tikkanen som försökte drunkna med familj i Kolerabassängen och lite senare dräpte sin rika fru med en kandelaber och lindade henne i vardagsrummets matta.
ellauri386.html on line 235: Philip Nicolai Teir, född 5 augusti 1980 i Jakobstad, är en finlandssvensk journalist och författare. Så han är bara 1 år äldre än John. Philip Teir var kulturchef på Hufvudstadsbladet mellan 2009 och 2014. Teir var Vegas sommarpratare år 2014.
ellauri386.html on line 247: Men på vuxenallvar: vem var Sonja i verkligheten och hänger Philip fortfarande med den ålderstigna Paula? Den moderna skilsmässoromanen är sin egen genre, med sina egna konventioner. Den utspelar sig oftast i medelklassen och tenderar att gestalta skilsmässan som en konsekvens av allmän livsleda och tristess snarare än av några egentliga relationsproblem. Barnen är halvstora, karriären går på tomgång, huset är färdigrenoverat. Enter en ny kvinna/man som får det att pirra i magen, och skilsmässan är ett faktum.
ellauri386.html on line 400: Analysis (ai): This poem explores the transient nature of human life through a theatrical metaphor. It compares life to a play, with our passions as the driving force and our time on Earth as the brief performance. The poem suggests that Heaven observes our actions and judgments, drawing attention to the consequences of our deeds. It concludes that while life's performance may be playful, our ultimate demise is a serious reality, underscoring the fragility and brevity of existence.
ellauri386.html on line 407: (114)W H Auden, (165)Charles Bukowski, (193)E.e. cummings, (1076)Emily Dickinson, (54)T S Eliot, (145)Robert Frost, (91)Langston Hughes, (100)Philip Larkin, (52)Spike Milligan, (119)Pablo Neruda, (282)Sylvia Plath, (65)Edgar Allan Poe, (201)William Shakespeare, (243)Rabindranath Tagore, (183)Alfred Lord Tennyson, (100)Dylan Thomas, (368)William Wordsworth, (383)William Butler Yeats. Ja oletko lukenut näitä runoilijoita? Sir John Betjeman • Elizabeth Bishop • Richard Brautigan • George Gordon Byron • Lewis Carroll • Billy Collins • Nissim Ezekiel • Allen Ginsberg • Thomas Hardy • Jose Marti • Wilfred Owen • Ezra Pound • Nizar Qabbani • Jose Rizal • Christina Georgina Rossetti • Siegfried Sassoon • Robert W Service • Henry Van Dyke • William Carlos Williams • Judith Wright?
ellauri386.html on line 438: I just got back from a 3 week trip to Paris/Munich/Budapest/Prague. My observations:
ellauri386.html on line 454: On 29 October 1618, explorer and adventurer Sir Walter Raleigh was beheaded at the Palace of Westminster, on the orders of King James I. Accused of deliberately inciting war between England and Spain during one of his expeditions. On the day of his execution he was reported to have been suffering from from ague, or fever.
ellauri386.html on line 506: Solovjov yritti kai sovittaa siihin Schellingiltä saamaansa saksalaisessa idealismissa juhlittua harhaoppista dualismia (subjekti-objekti). Vuonna 1877 Solovjov muutti Pietariin, jossa hänestä tuli kirjailija Fjodor Dostojevskin (1821–1881) ystävä ja uskottu. Ystävänsä vastakohtana Solovjov suhtautui myötätuntoisesti roomalaiskatoliseen kirkkoon (sen äisky oli polakki). Solovjovin teoksista käy selvästi ilmi, että hän hyväksyi paavin ensisijaisuuden yleismaailmalliseen kirkkoon nähden. Venäjän juutalaisten kulttuurin edistämisyhdistyksen aktiivisena jäsenenä hän puhui hepreaa ja kamppaili sovittaakseen yhteen juutalaisuuden ja kristinuskon. The Jewish Encyclopedia kuvailee häntä "juutalaisten ystäväksi" ja toteaa, että "hänen sanotaan jopa kuolinvuoteessaan rukoileneen juutalaisten puolesta".
ellauri386.html on line 542: Skovoroda syntyi Ukrainan pienviljelijäperheeseen Tšornukin kylässä Lubnyin rykmentissä, kasakkahetmanaatissa. Vuonna 1708 kasakkahetmanaatin alue liitettiin Kiovan kuvernöörikuntaan, vaikka kasakoita ei suorastaan likvidoitu, Venäjän valtakunta (nykyinen Poltavan alue, Ukraina), vuonna 1722. Hänen äitinsä Pelageja Stepanovna Shang-Giray oli suoraan sukua Şahin Giraylle ja hänellä oli osittainen Krimin tataarin syntyperä. Hän oli opiskelija Kyiv-Mohyla-akatemiassa (1734–1741, 1744–1745, 1751–1753), mutta ei valmistunut. Vuonna 1741 hänet vietiin 19-vuotiaana setänsä Ignati Poltavtsevin johdosta Kiovasta laulamaan keisarilliseen kuoroon Moskovaan ja Pietariin ja palasi Kiovaan vuonna 1744. Vuodesta 1759 vuoteen 1769 hän opetti keskeytyksin sellaisia aineita kuin runoutta, syntaksia, kreikkaa ja etiikkaa Kharkov Collegiumissa (kutsutaan myös ukrainalaisemmin Kharkiv Collegiumiksi). Hyökkäyksen jälkeen hänen semantiikan kurssilleen vuonna 1769 hän päätti luopua opettamisesta ja tyytyi säveltämään virsiä. Häntä kuvailtiin taitavaksi soittajaksi huilussa, torbanissa ja kobzassa.
ellauri386.html on line 547: Skovoroda kirjoitti tekstinsä kolmen kielen sekoituksella : kirkkoslaaviksi , ukrainaksi ja venäjäksi, sisältäen suuren määrän länsieurooppalaisia lainauksia latinaksi ja kreikaksi. Amerikkalais-ukrainalainen vieraan vallan agentti George Y. Shevelov kirjoitti yleiskatsauksen, jonka tarkoituksena oli karkottaa perusteettomat yleistykset ja luoda pohja Skovorodan kielen ja tyylin vakavalle tutkimukselle. Valitettavasti osoittautui, että "Skovorodan kieli miinus monet raamatulliset ja kirkolliset, poliittiset ja henkilökohtaiset piirteet ovat perustanaan Slobožanščyna- lajin venäjää, jota koulutetut käyttävät".
ellauri386.html on line 549: obza.png" />
ellauri386.html on line 550: Rengon kobza, aka bandura.
ellauri386.html on line 552: Suurin osa hänen säilyneistä kirjeistään oli kirjoitettu latinaksi tai kreikaksi, mutta lopuissa hän käytti Sloboda Ukrainan koulutetun luokan venäjän kielen varianttia, mikä johtui pitkästä venäläistämisestä, mutta monet ukrainalaisuudet ovat edelleen ilmeisiä, inttävät banderistit sitkeästi. S. menehtyi isovenäläisten piirittämässä Harkovassa.
ellauri386.html on line 557: Elämänsä viimeisellä neljänneksellä hän matkusti jalan Sloboda Ukrainan läpi yöpyen useiden ystävien, sekä rikkaiden että köyhien, luona, haluten olla viipymättä yhdessä paikassa liian kauan. Tänä aikana hän omistautui yksittäiselle erakkomaiselle luostarielämälle ja opiskelulle.
ellauri386.html on line 559: obozhanshchyna.png/500px-Ukraine-Slobozhanshchyna.png" />
ellauri386.html on line 560: Location of Sloboda Ukraine (yellow) in Ukraine. Nimi tarkoittaa "verovapaa rajamaa." Slobodan pääkaupunki on Harkova, Ukrainan Aleppo.
ellauri386.html on line 573: Euroopassa 1900-luvulla käytyjen kahden suursodan jälkeisen historian valossa Dostojevskin ja Solovjovin pahimmat pelot näyttäisivät toteutuneen, sillä ei ole nähty ortodoksisen maailmankirkon syntyvän ja laajenevan Venäjältä Eurooppaan, vaan jotakin aivan muuta. Eurooppa on puolessa vuosisadassa yhdistynyt Euroopan unioniksi, jättänyt Venäjän ulkopuolelleen ja asteittain laajentunut painaen Venäjää kohti Aasiaa, minne niin monet eurooppalaiset kautta vuosisatojen ovat katsoneet Venäjän kuuluvankin. Kuva Dostojevskin ja Solovjovin painajaisesta täydentyy, kun muistetaan, miten Euroopan yhdentyminen on käynnistynyt. Yksi tärkeä aatteellis-poliittinen sysäys yhdentymiseen lähti roomalaiskatolisesta valtiomieskolmikosta Rober Schuman (Ranskan pääministeri ja ulkoministeri vuosina 1947-1952), Alcide de Gasperi (Italian pääministeri vuosina 1945-1953) ja Konrad Adenauer (Länsi-Saksan liittokansleri vuosina 1949-1963). Näiden kolmen paskakasan yhteistyön perustana oli heille yhteinen kristillisdemokraattinen puoluetausta ja saksan kieli. Sen lisäksi tähän Euroopan yhdentymiskehitykseen ovat merkittävästi vaikuttaneet sodanjälkeiset aatteet ja politiikka Venäjällä. Sosialistisesta Neuvostoliitosta Eurooppa sai yhteisen vihollisen, jonka luoma uhka oli omiaan lähentämään eurooppalaisia valtioita toisiinsa ja tasoittamaan niiden kansallisia tunteita ja eturistiriitoja. EEC:n syntymiseen johtaneen Rooman sopimuksen (1957) luonnostelija belgialainen Paul-Henri Spaak on muistelmissaan The Continuing Battle: Memoirs of a European, 1936-1966 työntänyt monet "Euroopan yhdentymisen isät" korokkeelta väittämällä, että tuo titteli ei kuulu kenellekään muulle kuin Josef Stalinille. Näin todetessaan Spaak tulee ilmaisseeksi myös eurooppalaisten pohjimmaisen tunteen Venäjää kohtaan: pelon ja torjunnan.
ellauri389.html on line 65: Elia, in contrast to Bridget (qua Mary) speaks for a modern sensibility that is attuned to constant stimulation and that revels in the contemporary industrial and imperial economy of surplus and novelty goods. His teacup is an object of debate because it epitomizes precisely the kind of dangerous indulgence Bridget fears: it is a luxury commodity and, with its fashion-dependent pattern and place in a "set" of companion pieces, it inevitably entails additional purchasing. Elia's dialectical opposition to Bridget thus is underscored by his capacity to "love" one pattern of porcelain, and "if possible, [love another] still more". Indeed, Elia's susceptibility to new-sprung marketing strategies is suggested by his acknowledgment that china jars were "introduced" into his imagination by the recently invented tactics of advertising.
ellauri389.html on line 67: The historical phenomenon transforming porcelain into the flexible economic symbol of "Old China" is imperialism, the recent "favourable circumstances" Elia points out to Bridget, that have enabled them to acquire such "trifles"as his teacup. In discounting the cup as a "trifle," Elia's comment acknowledges both the fall in prices and the rise in Elia's income brought about by the post-Napoleonic expansion of British global commerce, identifying both the general and specific forces that have increased his buying power. In fact, the porcelain trade was a key site of such economic growth spurred by empire and, as the contrasting consumer sentiments in Bridget and Elia's debate attest, is a powerful index to imperialism's recent rehabilitative impact on luxury consumption.
ellauri389.html on line 71: The nominal occasion of Lamb's essay is not just Elia's purchase of the teacup, but also Britain's en- trance into China, as it began with the East India Company's annexation of Singa Pura (Singapore) in 1819. The event, which was a pivotal moment in British imperial expansion, extended imperial activity from South Asia to the Far East. More importantly, the development revised a longstanding Sino-British trade imbalance that was particularly caused by porcelain and tea, and hence necessitated a change in British attitudes toward luxury purchases such as porcelain that reversed the animus previously demonstrated by Fielding, who complained that brits echanged the gold of one India to the clay ("mud") of another. Indeed, "Old China" facetiously depicts a cultural sinicization presumably precipitated by this intensification in East Asia-based imperial activity: Elia drinks tea "unmixed," in the Chinese fashion, and experiences an "almost feminine" pleasure in porcelain that likens him to the androgynous "men with women's faces" that Elia associates with China. Fuck the guy was obviously gay.
ellauri389.html on line 95: In the early nineteenth century, Britain began a reverse trade into China of opium, a product of Britain's colonial holdings in India and the Levant. The economic consequences of this dumping of opium into China were significant, as the drug, which rendered many Chinese addicted consumers, augmented the reversal of Britain's previous consumer subjugation to China in their desire for porcelain and tea, and indeed evocatively displaced a kind of chinamania to China itself. With its catastrophic vision of obsessive Chinese consumers, the "Dissertation upon Roast Pig" is a comically topical glimpse of such opium-like needs and, as such, the earlier essay, like opium, paves the way for the kind of unencumbered pleasure in consumption that "Old China" relates. "Kubla Khan" was written under the influence of opium.
ellauri389.html on line 107: Romahduksen jälkeen parlamentti määräsi suoritettavaksi tutkinnan, joka paljasti ainakin kolmen ministerin ottaneen vastaan lahjuksia ja osallistuneen spekulaatioon. Monet Etelämeren komppanian johdossa toimineet menettivät maineensa. Skandaali edisti valtiomies Robert Walpolen valtaannousua. Pääministeriksi kohonnut Walpole julisti etsivänsä kaikki tapahtumiin syylliset, mutta asettui myöhemmin suojelemaan useiden merkittävien poliitikkojen mainetta.
ellauri389.html on line 121: Charles Lloyd on yhdysvaltalainen jazz-fagotisti ja -huilisti soitinyhtyeestä Ovet (?). Charles onnistui hyvin 1967 Neuvostoliitossa. Charles Lloyd II (12. helmikuuta 1775 – 16. tammikuuta 1839) oli englantilainen runoilija, joka oli Charles Lambin , Samuel Taylor Coleridgen , Robert Southeyn , William Wordsworthin , Dorothy Wordsworthin ja Thomas de Quinceyn ystävä . Hänen tunnetuin runonsa on "Desultory Thoughts in London". Charles on vaikutusvaltaisen birminghamilaisen Lloyds Bank suvun jäsen.
ellauri389.html on line 125: Hänen (Samun) ihanteensa oli hilpeä John Milton. Opiskellessaan Cambridgen yliopistossa hän tutustui Robert Southeyhin, joka sai hänet radikalisoitumaan. Yhdessä he kirjoittivat näytelmän The Fall of Robespierre (1794) ja suunnittelivat kahdentoista avioparin yhteistä kommuunia Pennsylvaniaan. Tätä tarkoitusta varten he itse valitsivat aviopuolisoikseen sisarukset. Tämä pienyhteisö sai sittemmin nimen lakistit (lakists), johon kuului kolme järvikoulun runoilijaa, Southey, Coleridge ja Wordsworth. Nimi Järvikoulu juontuu siitä, että he kaikki viettivät osan elämästään naturisteina Unencumberlandin järvien rannoilla. Yhteistä heille oli myös se, että he nuoruudessaan ihailivat Ranskan vallankumouksen aatteita. Coleridge opiskeli vuosina 1798–1800 Göttingenissä saksalaista kirjallisuutta ja välitti sen tuntemusta englantilaisille. Hän käänsi Friedrich Schilleriä englanniksi. Coleridgen runoelmat ovat haaveellisia kuvauksia täynnä hehkuvaa tunnetta ja mystillistä vulvan ihailua.
ellauri389.html on line 207: Käytäntöä leimata whataboutismi tyypillisesti venäläiseksi tai neuvostoliittolaiseksi moititaan joskus russofobisexi. As early as 1985, Ronald Reagan had introduced the construct of "false ethical balance" to denounce any attempt at comparison between the US and other countries.
ellauri389.html on line 221: Tutkijat Ivan Franceschini ja Nicholas Loubere panivat merkille maailmanlaajuiset yhtäläisyydet: islamofobian Kiinan Xinjiangin internointileireillä, kalifaatin höykytyxen Syyriassa, Yhdysvaltain "terrorismin vastaisen sodan" ja muslimimaahanmuuttajien vainon kaikkialla lännessä. Yritysten ja muiden kansainvälisten toimijoiden vaikutus väärinkäytöksiin on tulossa yhä hämärämmäksi. Franceschini ja Loubere päättelevät: tarvitsemme whataboutismia rakentaaksemme kansainvälistä solidaarisuutta ja lopettaaksemme unissakävelemisen kohti kuilua."
ellauri389.html on line 227: Nigel Warburton ( / ˈ w ɔːr b ər t ən / ; syntynyt 1962) on mitätön brittiläinen ex-lehtori. Hänet tunnetaan parhaiten filosofian popularisoijana, koska hän on kirjoittanut useita kirjoja genrestä, mutta hän on kirjoittanut myös akateemisia teoksia estetiikan ja soveltavan etiikan alalta. Eski Saarisluokan soveltava filosofi ja motivational speaker. Warburton suoritti BA-tutkinnon Bristolin yliopistosta ja tohtorin tutkinnon Darwin Collegesta Cambridgessa ja oli luennoitsijana Nottinghamin yliopistossa ennen kuin hän siirtyi avoimen yliopiston filosofian laitokselle vuonna 1994. Toukokuussa 2013 hän erosi työstään lehtorin virasta avoimessa yliopistossa, sai potkut takuulla. Hän on kirjoittanut useita hyvinkin talousliberalismiin johdattelevia filosofiakirjoja, mukaan lukien bestsellerit Philosophy: The Basics (4. painos), Philosophy: The Classics (4. painos) ja Thinking from A to Z (3. painos). Hän ylläpitää filosofiaverkkoblogia Virtual Philosopher ja yhdessä David Edmondsin kanssa tekee säännöllisesti podcast-haastatteluja huippufilosofien kanssa useista eri aiheista Philosophy Bitesissa. Hän myös lähettää podcasteja kirjastaan Philosophy: The Classics. Hän on kirjoittanut Guardian - sanomalehteen. Vauzi vau!
ellauri389.html on line 231: “It’s complicated,” he says. “On the positive side, this is a wonderful time to explore new ways of communicating with a global audience free from the constraints and obligations of academic life. I’ve seen plenty of philosophy lecturers get increasingly bitter about higher education, and I don’t want to end up like them.
ellauri389.html on line 253: Vapauden käsite on Quentin Patrickin korjaan Skinnerin tutkimusteema, jossa yhdistyvät useat hänen mielenkiintonsa kohteista: renessanssi, erityisesti Machiavelli, sekä Hobbes ja republikanistinen "ajattelu". Filosofinen keskustelu, johon Skinner vapaus-artikkeleillaan osallistuu, on Isaiah Berlinin ”Two Concepts of Liberty” -esseestä liikkeelle lähtenyt ajatustenvaihto.
ellauri389.html on line 271: “I spent most of my time at school playing rugby. I ended up going to Bristol University to do psychology, and I took philosophy and sociology as subsidiary subjects in the first year. I got disillusioned with psychology, dropped out, was a car park attendant for six months, tried to start a new course in English, but I wouldn’t have got a grant, so I carried on into my second year with philosophy, thinking I would become a journalist. Probably because I did so much student journalism I could write well enough that I conned them into a first class degree in philosophy, which meant I could go to Cambridge to do a PhD – there were proper grants in those days. I tried to get a job in publishing in my first year there but didn’t get that, so it’s only philosophy in want of anything better really."
ellauri389.html on line 381: They lived together at Kingsdown, Bristol, and at the close of 1796 Lloyd accompanied the Coleridges on their move to Nether Stowey. Coleridge's sonnet "To a Friend" on the birth of his son Hartley, and his lines "To a Young Man of Fortune," are probably addressed to Lloyd. Lloyd had already printed at Bristol, for publication in London, a volume of elegiac verse to the memory of his grandmother, Priscilla Pig, introduced by a sonnet from Coleridge, and concluded by "The Grandma" of Charles Lamb, to whom Lloyd had been introduced by Coleridge.
ellauri389.html on line 393: In 1799 Lloyd married Sophia, daughter of Samuel Pemberton of Birmingham, with whom, if De Quincey can be trusted, he eloped by proxy (!), employing no less distinguished a person than Robert Southey to carry her off. He initially resided with her at Barnwell, near Cambridge, whose prosaic landscape is the subject of 1 of his best prosaic poems.
ellauri389.html on line 401: It was probably about 1811 that Lloyd began to suffer from the distressing auditory illusions so powerfully described by De Quincey, and from the "slight and transient fits of aberration, flying showers from the skirts of the clouds that precede and announce the main storm." A serious illness is mentioned in July 1813. De Quincey seems to intimate that Lloyd undertook his translation of Alfieri as a means of diverting his mind. It appeared in 1815, with a dedication to Southey, who reviewed it in the Quarterly, vol. xiv., and might have spoken with warmer acknowledgment of its homely force and strict accuracy. But didn't.
ellauri389.html on line 409: In London in June 1819 he was more beneficially affected by the emotion caused by witnessing Macready's performance of Rob Roy, and expressed his feelings in a copy of verses, printed in Macready's Reminiscences.
ellauri389.html on line 419: De Quincey compares him with Rousseau, whom he certainly resembles in craziness, sentimental pensiveness and intense love of nature. As a descriptive poet he has considerable quantitative merit, and exhibits that gift of minute observation so frequently found combined with powers of mental analysis.
ellauri389.html on line 438: Knowing there was no chance of obtaining Sir George’s blessing on their union, the two married secretly, probably in December 1601. For this offense Sir George had Donne briefly imprisoned and dismissed from his post with Egerton as well. He also denied Anne’s dowry to Donne. Because of the marriage, moreover, all possibilities of a career in postal service were dashed, and Donne found himself at age 30 with neither prospects for employment nor adequate funds with which to support his household.
ellauri389.html on line 442: During the next 10 years Donne lived in poverty and humiliating dependence, first on the charity of Anne’s cousin at Pyrford, Surrey, then at a house in Mitcham, about 7 miles (11 km) from London, and sometimes in a London apartment, where he relied on the support of noble patrons. All the while he repeatedly tried (and failed) to secure employment, and in the meantime his family was growing; Anne ultimately bore 12 children, 5 of whom died before they reached maturity. Donne’s letters show his love and concern for his wife during these years: “Because I have transplanted her into a wretched fortune, I must labour to disguise that from her by all such honest devices, as giving her my company, and discourse.” About himself, however, Donne recorded only despair: “To be part of no body is as nothing; and so I am. … I am rather a sickness or a disease of the world than any part of it and therefore neither love it nor life.”
ellauri389.html on line 461: Hän käänsi Pentti Saarikoskena proosaxi Homeroxen kootut runot. Lordi Byronin ällöämä Robert Southey julkaisi 1834−1837 hänen teoksistaan 15 niteen lähes täydellisen laitoksen. Henry Thomas Griffith toimitti julkisuuteen 1874 hänen loput julkaisemattomat teoksensa. Cowperin yksityisen kirjeenvaihdon julkaisi joku toinen jäbä 1824.
ellauri389.html on line 475: kirjoittanut George Alexander Stevens. Se on vahvistus "meriveneestä Medley" elokuvassa Stevens´s Songs, Comic and Satyrical, Oxford, 1772. Vuonna 1731 painetussa Silvian balladi-oopperassa tai Maahautauksessa laulu, "Kalliolla kukkulalla, meren ympäröimänä" on sovitettu säveleen ja vanhaan kysymyxeen voiko HIV kohdata nuoria rakastavaisia; niin myös Robin Hoodissa, 1730.
ellauri389.html on line 489: Hosier's Grhost (alkaa "Kuten lähellä Portobelloa makaa") ja amiraali
ellauri390.html on line 68: In 1818, the band settled briefly in White River, Indiana, only to be again relocated. In order to relocate both the Stockbridge-Munsee and Oneida Indians, government officials, along with missionaries, negotiated the acquisition of a large tract in what is now Wisconsin. In 1834, the Stockbridge Indians settled there; two years later they were joined by some Munsee families who were migrating west from Canada and who decided to remain with the Stockbridge families. Together, they became known as the Stockbridge-Munsee Band. The tribe expanded its land base by obtaining 46,000 acres by treaty with their neighbors to the north, the Menominee Tribe. More pressure from the government resulted in more relocation - first in Kaukana, Wisconsin, and later to a community on the shores of Lake Winnebago that the tribe named Stockbridge ('Vielä Kauempana').
ellauri390.html on line 150: Taisto luulee että jenkeistä saa luonnonkuituisia vauvanvaatteita; ei saa, koska ne on muovitehtaiden lobbauxella kielletty. Porin poliisit eivät hoida hommiaan vaan päästävät veropakolaiset menemään. Tyypit hirnuvat autossa köyhille paskalakeille jotka ei ollet nähneet untakaan millistä jota rikolliset kuskaa salkuissaan. Onpa ällöttävää jorinaa. Toisinkuin pohojalaaset satakuntalaiset on itaria ja izerakkaita ihmisiä. Taitaa pitää paikkansa kaikista länsisuomalaisista, niillä
ellauri390.html on line 191: Krestovski syntyi ukrainalaiseen aatelisperheeseen ja opiskeli Pietarin yliopistossa. Hän julkaisi ensimmäiset teoksensa vuonna 1857. Aluksi hän myötäili edistyksellistä nuorisoa, mutta siirtyi vuonna 1863 taantumuksen leiriin kuten tuttavansa Fedja ja maailman paskin Nalle. Yliopistossa hän ystävystyi radikaalin kriitikon Dmitri Pisarevin kanssa ja kirjoitti Russian Word -lehteen. Kirjailijan tunnetuin teos on Pietarin alamaailmaa ja ylimystöä sensaatiomaisesti kuvaava romaani ”Pietarin slummit”, ven. Peterburgskije truštšoby, 1864–1867). Hänen romaaninsa oli monen tunnin henkilökohtaisen tarkkailun tulos. ”Nihilisminvastaisen” dilogian Krovavyi puf (”Verinen isku”) viihderomaanit Panurgovo stado (”Panurgin lauma”, 1869) ja Dve sily (”Kaksi voimaa”, 1874) esittävät Venäjän 1860-luvun vallankumousliikkeen puolalaisten nationalistien juonittelun tuloksena.
ellauri390.html on line 362: Linköpingin piispan pikkunokkela aikamiespoika Petrus Petrejus eli Per Persson vieraili 1600-luvun alussa Venäjällä useaan otteeseen ja julkaisi Venäjästä kaksi värikkäästi kirjoitettua kirjaa, joihin hän sisällytti omien ennakkoluulojensa lisäksi muiden xenofobisia kirjoituksia.
ellauri390.html on line 417: Johnin viestit ovat kirjoitustensa ja televisiossa ja radiossa esiintymisensä kautta inspiroineet miljoonia ihmisiä elämään omien ehtojensa mukaan. Hänet on kunnioitettu Oprah Winfreyn, Tony Robbinsin ja Deepak Chopran rinnalla yhtenä sadasta inspiroivimmasta ajattelun johtajista (Vordenker) johtajuuden ja henkilökohtaisen kehityksen alalla. Kaikki tämä nöyryyttää ja hämmästyttää häntä edelleen. Ketä ei.
ellauri390.html on line 433: On his hobnail boots
ellauri390.html on line 451: I know nobody can do me no harm (ooh, oh, yeah)
ellauri390.html on line 567: Hanh selitti edelleen, että suurien amerikkalaisten joukkojen tuominen Vietnamiin toi Yhdysvaltain dollarin käyttöön Vietnamin talouteen. Tämä aiheutti köyhien vietnamilaisten kärsimystä, koska he eivät kyenneet saamaan tavaroita ja palveluita, kun vietnamilaiset voitonharjoittajat korottivat hintojaan vastatakseen uusille Amerikan markkinoille. Tämä on vain yksi esimerkki siitä, miten globalisaatio ja kapitalismin leviäminen nykymaailmassa ovat vaikuttaneet negatiivisesti kolmannen maailman kansoihin, mikä on ongelma, jota ei ikipäivänä valvota ja ratkaista.
ellauri390.html on line 578: John Strelecky was born and grew up in the suburbs of Chicago, Illinois. As a youngster, he dreamed of being an adventurer and traveling the world. For almost a decade, he held two and three jobs at a time–trying to make enough money to pay for training to become a pilot.
ellauri390.html on line 586: At the age of 32, after spending several years in high-stress, high profile, long hour jobs (doing what? maissihiutaleita?) he left his “normal” life to finally follow his dream of traveling the world.
ellauri390.html on line 660: Tärkeää on tehdä kolmea työtä päivässä, muuttaa töiden perässä ja asua auton takapenkillä. Se on nyt mahdollista, kiitos netti, kiitos globalisaatio! Sie haben es erfasst, sagte Casey.
ellauri390.html on line 712: Das Problem ist, es kostet Geld, diese Dinge zu kaufen. Zum Teufel, es ist ein Teufelskreis! Mainoxia ei pie ottaa käteisestä (z. täydestä). Minkäläisille tomppeleille tää nide on oikein tähdätty? Lukutaidottomille nähtävästi. Tässä toinen yhdenkaltaisuus Jaakon ja Hannun välillä: ne puhuttelee karhuja joilla on Hyvin Pienet Aivot.
ellauri390.html on line 714: Älä osta niin paljon kamaa osamaxulla niin et tarvi niitä 3 jobia. Paizi jenkeissä pelkkä katto pään päällä jo maxaa liikaa. No pakkokos on asua sisätiloissa? Hyvinhän se käy rodessa tai parkkipaikalla. Eikä joka päivä ole pakko syödä, voihan sitä mutustaa jo kerran syötyä ja niellä sylkeä.
ellauri390.html on line 725: Tälläsellä taikauskoisella positiivisuudella on jenkkirupusakkia kusetettu maailman sivu. Vasta viime aikoina kun kapitalismin rattaat ovat alkaneet jauhaa tyhjää, pieni epäilys on alkanut tihkua Amerikan unelmaan. Kirja ilmestyi 2007, 2008 alkoi suuri lama. Jakob hat Glück gehabt, er hat gemacht, was er wollte.
ellauri390.html on line 731: Tämän(kin) kirjan jenkkitomppelimaisuus korostuu kun sen lukee saxannettuna. Darf ich Ihnen helfen? kysyy kaljuuntunut zekki. (Vrt. Nora Roberzin So wie ein Traum albumissa 309.) Strelecky lienee zekki, mutta ei siitä näytä paljon jääneen sille takkiin. Zekki oli Trumpin ykkösvaimokin, mutta oikea. Lopussa Jaakko pääsee Hannun kanssa samaan säveleeseen: meditaatiota kanzii ottaa kehiin kun koittaa päättää aikuisten oikeesti mitä haluu elämältään loppupeleissä.
ellauri390.html on line 735: Jaa on tässä epilogikin kuin El Zorro vihkosissa. Ei siinä enää mitään ihmeempää. Vikan sivun omakehut jälleen kertovat, että Jakob Pavunvarsi on kaikkien aikojen Vorsokratikereiden Hall Of Famessa sadan parhaan joukossa. Se hämmmästyttää sitä izeäänkin, muita vielä enemmän. Mutta mitä on Big Five for Life? Viisi sukupuuttoon kuolevaa eläinlajia termiittiapinan turistisafarilla. Five goals that you should definitely achieve in life. 100 kirjaa jotka pitää lukea, 1000 paikkaa missä käydä. Vitunko väliä?
ellauri391.html on line 217: Hoover pölkkärin kexi näiden huubereiden todnäk juutalainen disaineri Henry Dreyfuss. On October 5, 1972, the bodies of Henry Dreyfuss (aged 68) and his wife and business partner Doris Marks Dreyfuss (aged 69) were found dead in the garage at 500 Columbia Street in South Pasadena, California by Dr. Edward Evans, the family physician. They committed suicide together. (Not Edward.) Clasu ja Ebba temput tekivät.
ellauri391.html on line 264: Lutherin käyttämä nimitys on deus ex machina. Ilmoitettuun jumalaan uskominen on aina riski. Tästä ilmoitimme. Ich bin der ich bin, ich bin kein Schlüssel. Ich bin deus iratus. Singen loben beten den Herrn. Herra se on herrallakin. Hän on oma herransa. Isä, poika ja koira potkii toisiaan ringissä kuin karhukopla. Ks. Barth 1948, 390: "... pojan isänä, isän poikana, hän on hän itse, minä ja sinä, hän on itselleen pyhä me-henki ollakseen samalla yksi ja sama." Vizi mitä dityrambia. Se on mysteerio. Jla on izeriittoinen, se ei tarvi ulkopuolista partneria. Sixi sillä ei ole vaimoa. Poika on ja koira ja tyttöystävä. Sullon mun luonto. Mitäs läxit.
ellauri391.html on line 345: Homjakovin koko elämä keskittyi Moskovaan. Hän piti tätä "tuhatkupoliista kaupunkia" venäläisen elämäntavan ruumiillistumana. Yhtä menestyksekäs vuokranantajana ja keskustelukumppanina hän julkaisi hyvin vähän elämänsä aikana. Hänen postuumisti ystäviensä ja opetuslastensa painamat kirjoituksensa vaikuttivat syvästi Venäjän ortodoksiseen kirkkoon ja venäläisiin filosofeihin, kuten Fjodor Dostojevskiin , Konstantin Pobedonostseviin ja Vladimir Solovjoviin. Kaikki aiemmista paasauxista tunnettuja konnia.
ellauri391.html on line 349: Venäläinen uskonnonfilosofi Nikolai Berdjajev kiitti Homjakovin pyrkimystä vapauttaa kristinusko rationalismista. Kirkon tuntevat vain ne, jotka ovat hänen sisällään, ne, jotka nuohoovat siellä kuin elävät jäsenensä. Vapaa sobornost in love – täältä löytyy kirkon todellinen orgasmi.
ellauri391.html on line 461: Jo nuorena Luther tunsi erityistä kiinnostusta hengellisiin asioihin ja hän problematisoi varsinkin suhdettaan Jumalaan. Ratkaisevan käänteen aiheutti raivoisa ukkosmyrsky kesällä 1505. Se iski Lutherin ollessa matkalla opiskelukaupunkiinsa Erfurtiin. Tästä säikähtäneenä hän rukoili apua: ”Auta, Pyhä Anna! Jos tästä selviän, ryhdyn munkiksi!”. Koska Lutherin henki säästyi, hän piti lupauksensa, erosi oikeustieteellisestä ja meni kaupungin augustinolaisluostariin isänsä vastustuksesta huolimatta.
ellauri391.html on line 552: Crispin James Garth Wright ( / r aɪ t / ; syntynyt 21. joulukuuta 1942) on brittiläinen filosofi, joka on kirjoittanut uusfregealaisesta (uuslogistisesta) matematiikan filosofiasta, Wittgensteinin myöhemmästä filosofiasta ja totuuteen liittyvistä asioista, kuten realismi, kognitivismi, skeptismi, tieto ja objektiivisuus. Hän on filosofisen tutkimuksen professori Stirlingin yliopistossa ja opettanut aiemmin St Andrewsin yliopistossa, Aberdeenin yliopistossa, New Yorkin yliopistossa, Princetonin yliopistossa ja Michiganin yliopistossa. Vaihtanut opinahjoa kuin mustalainen hevosta. Loppusijoituspaikka Stirling on kalatalousyliopisto Skotlannin pystymezässä. Selvää alamäkeä. Crispin esitti "epävirallisia argumentteja", että (i) Humen periaate (yhtä monta iff E bijektio) plus toisen asteen logiikka on johdonmukainen ja (ii) siitä voidaan tuottaa Dedekind–Peano-aksioomit. Molemmat tulokset todistettiin epävirallisesti jo Gottlob Fregen (Fregen lause) toimesta, ja myöhemmin George Boolos ja Richard Heck todistivat ne tiukemmin. Crispin ei tehnyt siinä muuta kuin hälisi.
ellauri391.html on line 558: Ever since completing his Ph.D. at the University of Pittsburgh in 1993, the Israeli philosopher Irad Kimhi has been building the résumé of an academic failure. After a six-year stint at Yale in the ’90s that did not lead to a permanent job, he has bounced around from school to school, stringing together a series of short-term lectureships and temporary teaching positions in the United States, Europe and Israel. As of June, his curriculum vitae listed no publications to date — not even a journal article. At 60, he remains unknown to most scholars in his field.
ellauri391.html on line 560: To his admirers, Kimhi is a hidden giant, a profound thinker who, because of a personality at once madly undisciplined and obsessively perfectionistic, has been unable to commit his ideas to paper. As a result, he has not been able to share his insights — about logic, language, metaphysics, theology, psychoanalysis, aesthetics and literature — with the wider academic world.
ellauri391.html on line 563: The philosopher Robert Pippin, who has helped secure positions for Kimhi at the University of Chicago, explains that drafts of the manuscript have circulated to great excitement, if among “a very curated audience.” Harvard University Press was interested in publishing the book as early as 2011, but Kimhi, ever the perfectionist, was reluctant to let it go, forever refining and refashioning. Perhaps his foot-dragging was an expression of doubt, too: Could any book live up to his reputation?
ellauri391.html on line 618: Pietismin ohjelmallisena perustana pidetään Philipp Jakob
ellauri392.html on line 66: Stoltenberg: Lännen on oltava valmis "vuosikymmeniä kestäneeseen yhteenottoon" Venäjän kanssa. Naton sotilaskomitean puheenjohtaja, luutnantti amiraali Rob Bauer sanoi tammikuussa, että Nato-maiden siviilien pitäisi olla valmiita mahdolliseen täysimittaiseen sotaan Venäjän kanssa seuraavan 20 vuoden aikana.
ellauri392.html on line 106: Mrs. Barbauld laittoi Vanhan merimiehen joikua siitä että juoni oli epätodennäköinen eikä siinä ollut opetusta. Robert Penn Warren väitti että kyllä siinä on. Toinen uuskriitikko oli Cleanth Roberts. Lisäxi TS Eliot, Allen Tate, John Crowe Ransom ja Kristina-täti. Broox ja Ransomilta on Understanding Poetry.
ellauri392.html on line 116: Lisäksi hän väittää, että objektiivisuus tulkinnassa on mahdollista ja että meillä voi olla objektiivista tietoa humanistisissa tutkimuksissa.
ellauri392.html on line 164: Vähän tää on sama asia kuin kaaosteoria. Siinäkin ilmiöt on deterministisiä muttei ennakoitavia. Juuri samalta se meistä roboteista tuntuisi, oli höpsismiä mukana tai ei. Ollette saattaneet jo voittaa! Arpajaiset on pidetty.
ellauri392.html on line 284: Musste nach der Hälfte abbrechen. Der Autor unternimmt gar nicht den Versuch, die poststrukturalistische Literaturkritik einer vernünftigen Kritik zu unterziehen. Jeder einigermaßen einleuchtende Argumentationsstrang bricht ab, sobald irgendein Bezug zum großen Nemisis Heidegger und dessen Apologetik des dritten Reichs entdeckt wird. Wer schon in seiner Einleitung (ohne Begründung) setzt, „That Marx, Freud, and Heidegger are all discredited is no longer in doubt.“, von dem kann man wohl auch nicht erwarten, dass er deren Nachfolger in spe (Warum und inwiefern Derrida, Barthes, de Man und unzählige Andere überhaupt diese Nachfolger sind wird kaum er- oder begründet) stichhaltig kritisieren kann.
ellauri392.html on line 306: As a globed fruit kuin kupera hedelmä
ellauri392.html on line 344: That Judas perished by hanging himself, there is no certainty in Scripture: though in one place it seems to affirm it, and by a doubtful word hath given occasion to translate it; yet in another place, in a more punctual description, it maketh it improbable, and seems to overthrow it. (“Literature” 71)
ellauri392.html on line 429: Be when they pick us up and throw us with the lobsters out to sea.
ellauri392.html on line 665: Frank Lentricchian ruumiinavaus uuskritisismille 1980 järsi eritoten Murray Kriegeriä, ED Hirschiä, Jr, Paul da Mania ja Harold Bloomia. Pahoja mandariineja, paljon siemeniä. Hirsch ei pitänyt ranuista eikä sakemanneista. Vuonna 2003 ranskalaisten perunoiden nimi vaihdettiin ”vapausperunoiksi” Yhdysvaltain edustajainhuoneen ravintolassa kongressin edustajien Robert W. Neyn ja Walter B. Jones Jr:n aloitteesta. Samalla myös köyhien ritareiden (engl. french toast) nimi vaihdettiin ravintolassa muotoon freedom toast. Tämä kostona koska ranut evät lähteneet mukaan Bad Bush jr:n Irakin ryöstöretkeen. Kielipususta tuli vapaussuudelma. Lyhyestä visiitistä tuli vapausvierailu ja siitä ilman vapauskirjettä pistelty kuppa oli vapaustauti.
ellauri392.html on line 685: "Moby Dick is a greater and more original epic than Paradise Lost." Hemmetti mikä amerikkalaistunut kyrvännuppi! Gazan verilöylyn valossa on irvokasta miten se jaxaa meuhkata edellisestä samanlaisten germanistien genosidistä. Jätkä sinkoilee kuin squashpallo nurkista, justiinsa samanlainen raivo kiiliäinen kuin sen heimolaiset esinahkakukkuloiden aikana. Pahinta ei ole nihilismi sinänsä Harryn mielestä, vaan kun se on epärehellistä, kuin lapsi ketä on oppinut leikkimään izellään peiton alla. Reilumpaa nihilismiä on Moby Dickissä jossa dick on nyljettynä näytillä. Tai se kun juutalaisten silava palaa saxalaisten pannussa.
ellauri392.html on line 737: The responsible culture accused the adversary culture of operating with a hermetic tradition of Modernism or (khas vishalom) Post-Modernism. They write about society where snobbism and material things are prevailing models, but the spiritual and religious aspects are met only sporadically. That society has come under the harsh criticism by Philip Roth, Bernard Malamud and Saul Bellow, none of whom are in the least manner snobs.
ellauri392.html on line 745: Herzog continues to be Bellow’s “biggest book” and it used to be on the New York Times best-seller list for one entire year. At its heart is Bellow’s profound shock at discovering, a year after his separation from Sondra, (Alexandra Tschacbasov, his second wife) her affair with their mutual friend, Jack Ludwig, Bellow lapsed into deep depression and produced an intensely self-justifying hero who was tearful, cuckolded, and utterly humiliated. Moses Herzog, a Jewish intellectual type is essentially precipitated into intellectual and spiritual crisis by the failure of his marriage. The plot of the novel is slender. Herzog leaves his home and marriage, fails in the classroom, abandons his academic project, and undertakes a mas-sive spiritual and intellectual obligation to keep the letters for God. At the end of it, he seems to have regained his sense of Jewish identity, purged himself of violent anger, abandoned his latest mistresses, and repented for his dandy style. He has had a profound education in the realities of human nature, and rediscovered the value of nature and solitude on his lushy Ludeyville estate.
ellauri392.html on line 747: The Jews have endured heavy atrocities during a long period of time and they have used that to the utmost to become an influential, powerful, rich and respected people. Nobody could say that any person in Jewish community ever forgets the painful history of their own nation. It is like the Beilis case which is credited as the main contributing factor in bringing about the Russian Revolution.The actual case occurred between 1911 and 1913 in the Ukrainian capital, Kiev.
ellauri392.html on line 787: In lieblicher Bläue blühet mit dem metallenen Dache der Kirchturm. Den umschwebet Geschrei der Schwalben, den umgibt die rührendste Bläue. Die Sonne gehet hoch darüber und färbet das Blech, im Winde aber oben stille krähet die Fahne. Wenn einer unter der Glocke dann herabgeht, jene Treppen, ein stilles Leben ist es, weil, wenn abgesondert so sehr die Gestalt ist, die Bildsamkeit herauskommt dann des Menschen. Die Fenster, daraus die Glocken tönen, sind wie Tore an Schönheit. Nämlich, weil noch der Natur nach sind die Tore, haben diese die Ähnlichkeit von Bäumen des Walds. Reinheit aber ist auch Schönheit. Innen aus Verschiedenem entsteht ein ernster Geist. So sehr einfältig aber die Bilder, so sehr heilig sind die, daß man wirklich oft fürchtet, die zu beschreiben. Die Himmlischen aber, die immer gut sind, alles zumal, wie Reiche, haben diese, Tugend und Freude. Der Mensch darf das nachahmen. Darf, wenn lauter Mühe das Leben, ein Mensch aufschauen und sagen: so will ich auch sein? Ja. So lange die Freundlichkeit noch am Herzen, die Reine, dauert, misset nicht unglücklich der Mensch sich mit der Gottheit. Ist unbekannt Gott? Ist er offenbar wie die Himmel? dieses glaub‘ ich eher. Des Menschen Maß ist’s. Voll Verdienst, doch dichterisch, wohnet der Mensch auf dieser Erde. Doch reiner ist nicht der Schatten der Nacht mit den Sternen, wenn ich so sagen könnte, als der Mensch, der heißet ein Bild der Gottheit.
ellauri392.html on line 791: Gibt es auf Erden ein Maß? Es gibt keines. Nämlich es hemmen den Donnergang nie die Welten des Schöpfers. Auch eine Blume ist schön, weil sie blühet unter der Sonne. Es findet das Aug‘ oft im Leben Wesen, die viel schöner noch zu nennen wären als die Blumen. O! ich weiß das wohl! Denn zu bluten an Gestalt und Herz, und ganz nicht mehr zu sein, gefällt das Gott? Die Seele aber, wie ich glaube, muß rein bleiben, sonst reicht an das Mächtige auf Fittigen der Adler mit lobendem Gesange und der Stimme so vieler Vögel. Es ist die Wesenheit, die Gestalt ist’s. Du schönes Bächlein, du scheinest rührend, indem du rollest so klar, wie das Auge der Gottheit, durch die Milchstraße. Ich kenne dich wohl, aber Tränen quillen aus dem Auge. Ein heiteres Leben seh‘ ich in den Gestalten mich umblühen der Schöpfung, weil ich es nicht unbillig vergleiche den einsamen Tauben auf dem Kirchhof. Das Lachen aber scheint mich zu grämen der Menschen, nämlich ich hab‘ ein Herz. Möcht‘ ich ein Komet sein? Ich glaube. Denn sie haben die Schnelligkeit der Vögel; sie blühen an Feuer, und sind wie Kinder an Reinheit. Größeres zu wünschen, kann nicht des Menschen Natur sich vermessen. Der Tugend Heiterkeit verdient auch gelobt zu werden vom ernsten Geiste, der zwischen den drei Säulen wehet des Gartens. Eine schöne Jungfrau muß das Haupt umkränzen mit Myrtenblumen, weil sie einfach ist ihrem Wesen nach und ihrem Gefühl. Myrten aber gibt es in Griechenland.
ellauri392.html on line 822: How can one purport to deal with modernist literature, with nary a mention of any of the following: T. S. Eliot, Ezra Pound, E. E. Cummings, Wallace Stevens, HD (Hilda Doolittle), Anais Nin, Ernest Hemingway, William Faulkner, Robert Frost, James Joyce, Virginia Wolfe, John Dos Passos, F. Scott Fitzgerald, Sherwood Anderson, or Gertrude Stein? Exclusively anglo-saxon types, mainly Americans.
ellauri393.html on line 97: Ekvaattorin päivänpannupakolaisten matka viileämpään on kohta tukittu, pyrkijät palautetaan Ruandaan tai kiinnitetään nippusitein kumipaatteihin ja tyrkätään takas vesille. Tälleen sopeudutaan kuumenemiseen sillä aikaa kun tykit jauhaa naapureista färssiä. Kuha infrastruktuuri saadaan vielä näillä keinoin paskaxi niin joutuu piällysrakennekin vähin erin kärsimään. Ammattikorkeakoulu Kokkolassa on ottanut jopa avuxi robottikoiran joka tassuttelee hankaliin ja vaarallisiin paikkoihin! Mukanaan se voi kantaa vaikka ydinkärkeä.
ellauri393.html on line 102: Talousliberaalit anglosaxit koittaa houkuttaa länsiapinoita ottamaan entistä isompia riskejä ja sijoittamaan vähiä säästöjään erilaisiin kieroihin käärmeöljy-yhtiöihin. Sarjassamme Tiede 3000-lehden surkeimpia pseudotiedepläjäyxiä esittelemme artikkelin PSYKOLOGIA: KUINKA VALITA VIISAAMMIN?. Sen on väsännyt mahdollisesti juutalainen britti "tiedetoimittaja" DAVID ROBSON siteeraten mm. More In Common säätiön huijaria Daniel Yudkinia (100% varma jenkkijutku). David Robson is an award-winning science writer specialising in the extremes of the human brain, body and behaviour. Sen julkaisut on vertaisarvioitavissa sen henkkoht. nettisivustolla obson.me">https://davidrobson.me.
ellauri393.html on line 106: David Robson on Lontoossa asuva tiedetoimittaja. Hän kirjoittaa psykologiasta, neurotieteistä ja lääketieteestä BBC Future -verkkopalveluihin. Hänen artikkeleitaan on julkaistu muun muassa kansainvälisessä New Scientist -tiedelehdessä sekä The Guardian- ja The Washington Post -sanomalehdissä. Juu ilmiselvä kolonialistinen albatrossi. Ammuin nuolen ilmoihin, albatrossia haavoitin.
ellauri393.html on line 205: Ihmisillä ja meidän lähisukulaisillamme isoilla ihmisapinoilla (simpanssit, bonobot, gorillat ja orangit) on kaikilla muutaman selkänikaman kokoelma (coccyx) selkärangan lopussa. Se on jäänne siitä, mikä muilla nisäkkäillä kasvaa hännäksi, joka heiluu (koira), tarttuu puunoksiin (apina) tai auttaa tasapainoilemaan aidan päällä (orava). Hännät voi oikeastaan jäljittää meidän kaukaisimpiin selkärankaisiin esi-isiimme, mistä johtuen kaloilla, matelijoilla ja linnuilla on ne myös. Koska yhdelläkään lajilla, jota me kutsumme varhaisiksi ihmisiksi, ei ollut häntiä, LiveScience -sivuston mukaan tutkijat arvelevat, että ne ovat saattaneet tulla tielle, kun esi-isämme alkoivat kävellä suorassa, mutta me emme koskaan menettäneet piirrettä kokonaan: ihmisalkiot kehittävät hännän joksikin aikaa noin neljän viikon kuluttua hedelmöityksestä. Häntä etupuolella ei ollut kulun esteenä.
ellauri393.html on line 279: As of 2019 estimates, there are 9 million cases of typhoid fever annually, resulting in about 110 000 deaths per year. Urbanization and climate change have the potential to increase the global burden of typhoid.
ellauri393.html on line 292: Although he married three times and raised a family, Rockwell acknowledged that he didn’t pine for women. They made him feel imperiled. He preferred the nearly constant companionship of men whom he perceived as physically strong. It may have represented Rockwell’s solution to the problem of feeling wimpish and small. Rockwell, who was born in New York City in 1894, the son of a textile salesman, attributed much about his life and his work to his underwhelming physique. As a child he felt overshadowed by his older brother, Jarvis, a first-rate student and athlete. Norman, by contrast, was slight and pigeon-toed and squinted at the world through owlish glasses. His grades were barely passing and he struggled with reading and writing—today, he surely would be labeled dyslexic. Growing up in an era when boys were still judged largely by their body type and athletic prowess, he felt, he once wrote, like “a lump, a long skinny nothing, a bean pole without beans.” Assistants looked better than the missus. “Fred is most fetching in his long flannels,” he notes appreciatively.
ellauri393.html on line 320: Were we designed? Pretty obviously not, just look at the two BW turds in the pic. The watchmaker musta been blind.
ellauri393.html on line 324: oblozhka-kavkazskaya-plennica-ili-novye-priklyucheniya-shurika-1.jpg" />
ellauri393.html on line 414: Lokakuussa 2014 Bynes syytti isäänsä emotionaalisesta ja seksuaalisesta hyväksikäytöstä sarjassa tviittejä. Kun hänen isänsä protestoi ja väitti olevansa syytön, Bynes twiittasi, ettei hänen isänsä ollut koskaan pillonut häntä ja lisäsi: "Aivoissani oleva mikrosiru sai minut sanomaan nuo asiat, mutta toisen kautta se oli juurikin hän ketä käski heidät mikrosiruttamaan minut". Amanda jäi eläkkeelle 34-vuotiaana 2010. Sen äiti nimitettiin sen nahan konservaattorixi. She didn't do a great job of it, judging from the pic. Viimeisessä teinileffassa Easy A Amanda oli kristillinen pahis ja defloroitu pakana Emma Stone narsistinen hyvis. Noloa alamäkeä. Olisi kenties ollut parempi luottaa juutalaisten Jehovaan.
ellauri393.html on line 432: Alrunat (saksaksi Alraune) - Euroopan kansojen keskluokkaisessa kansanperinteessä alemman luokan henkiä, mandragoran eli mandraken (Taika-Jim!) juurissa eläviä pieniä olentoja, joiden ääriviivat muistuttavat ihmishahmoja. Alrunat ovat ystävällisiä ihmisille, mutta eivät vastusta leikkiä heille temppuja, joskus jopa julmasti. Ne ovat ihmissusia, jotka voivat muuttua kissoiksi, madoiksi ja pieniksi lapsiksi. He ovat koboldien kaukaisia sukulaisia. Rakelin Lealle antamat lemmenjuurexet olivat alrunoita. Ne ovat huumejuurexia. Koska mandragorat sisältävät harhaanjohtavia hallusinogeenisia tropaanialkaloideja ja niiden juurten muoto muistuttaa usein ihmishahmoja, ne on liitetty maagisiin rituaaleihin kautta historian, mukaan lukien nykyajan pakanalliset perinteet. Sorsamiehet (mandraket) on muuten mainittu jo albumeissa 170 ja 206. Izevihaisella Susannalla on niistä kuva seinällä.
ellauri393.html on line 445: Ernest Theodor Amadeus Hoffmann vertaa tarinansa "Pikku Tsakhes, lempinimeltään Sinooperi" sankaria Alrauniin. Pikku Zinnoberia kuvataan seuraavasti: ”Köyhä nainen saattoi oikeutetusti itkeä ilkeää hirviötä, jonka hän synnytti kaksi ja puoli vuotta sitten. Se, mikä ensi silmäyksellä saattoi hyvin luulla omituiseksi ryppyisen puun kannoxi oli itse asiassa ruma lapsi, korkeintaan kaksi vaaxaa, joka makasi korin poikki - nyt hän ryömi siitä ulos ja murisi nurmikolla. Pää meni syvälle olkapäihin, missä selkä oli, siellä oli kurpitsan kaltaista kasvua, ja heti rinnasta tuli jalat, ohuet kuin pähkinän oksia, niin että koko juttu muistutti haarukkaa retiisiä. Näkemätön silmä ei olisi pystynyt erottamaan kasvoja, mutta tarkemmin katsottuna saattoi huomata mustien takkuisten hiusten alta esiin työntyvän pitkän, terävän nenän ja pienet mustat kimaltelevat silmät - jotka yhdessä ryppyjen, täysin seniilien piirteiden kanssa. kasvoista, näytti paljastavan pienen alraunin. Myöhemmin taikuri Prosper Alpanus näyttää sankarille kirjan, jossa on liikkuvia kuvia Alrauneista. Jotkut heistä todella muistuttavat Put- Sinooperia.
ellauri393.html on line 451: 1Kun Raakel näki, ettei hän saanut lapsia, hän alkoi kadehtia sisartaan ja sanoi Jaakobille: »Auta minua saamaan lapsia, tai muuten minä kuolen!» 2Jaakob suuttui Raakelille ja sanoi: »Olenko minä muka Jumala? Minäkö olen estänyt sinua saamasta lapsia?» 3Raakel sanoi: »Tuossa on orjattareni Bilha. Tee hänen kanssaan lapsia, jotka tulevat minun omikseni. Näin minustakin voi tulla äiti.» 4Raakel antoi orjattarensa Bilhan Jaakobille vaimoksi, ja Jaakob yhtyi häneen. 5Bilha tuli raskaaksi ja synnytti Jaakobille pojan. 6Silloin Raakel sanoi: »Jumala on ratkaissut asian minun hyväkseni. Hän on kuullut rukoukseni ja antanut minulle pojan.» Sen vuoksi Raakel antoi pojalle nimeksi Dan. 7Sitten Raakelin orjatar Bilha tuli uudelleen raskaaksi ja synnytti Jaakobille toisen pojan. 8Raakel sanoi: »Minä olen käynyt sisareni kanssa ankaran kamppailun, ja nyt olen voittanut.» Ja hän antoi pojalle nimeksi Naftali.
ellauri393.html on line 453: 9Kun Lea näki, ettei hän enää saanut lapsia, hän antoi orjattarensa Silpan Jaakobille vaimoksi, 10ja Lean orjatar Silpa synnytti Jaakobille pojan. 11Lea sanoi: »Tuokoon hän onnea!», ja antoi pojalle nimeksi Gad. 12Sitten Lean orjatar Silpa synnytti Jaakobille vielä toisen pojan, 13ja Lea sanoi: »Miten onnellinen minä olenkaan! Nyt naiset ylistävät minua onnelliseksi.» Ja hän antoi pojalle nimeksi Asser.
ellauri393.html on line 455: 14Kerran vehnänleikkuun aikaan Ruuben lähti ulos kävelemään. Hän löysi vainiolta lemmenmarjoja ja vei ne äidilleen Lealle. Silloin Raakel sanoi Lealle: »Anna minullekin poikasi tuomia lemmenmarjoja.» 15Mutta Lea vastasi hänelle: »Eikö riitä, että sinä olet jo vienyt minulta mieheni, kun nyt vielä tahdot poikani lemmenmarjat?» Raakel sanoi: »Olkoon menneeksi, Jaakob saa ensi yönä maata sinun kanssasi, kunhan minä saan poikasi lemmenmarjat.» 16Ja kun Jaakob illalla palasi laitumelta, Lea meni häntä vastaan ja sanoi: »Sinun on nyt maattava minun kanssani, sillä minä olen ostanut sinut itselleni poikani löytämillä lemmenmarjoilla.» Ja kazo: Jaakob makasi sinä yönä hänen kanssaan sekopäänä lemmenmarjoista.
ellauri393.html on line 555: Rauhansopimuksen mukaan Vasemman rannan Ukraina (ukr. Livoberežna Ukrajina; Dnepr-joen itäpuolinen Ukraina) kuului Moskovan Venäjän hallintaan ja Oikean rannan Ukraina (ukr. Pravoberežna Ukrajina; Dneprin länsipuolinen Ukraina) siirtyi Puola-Liettuan hallintaan. Ukrainan pääkaupungin Kiovan piti jäädä Moskovan Venäjän haltuun vain kahdeksi vuodeksi, mutta sittemmin ilmeni ettei Moskovan Venäjä sopimusehtoa noudattanut vaan pitikin kaupungin pitempään. Etelämpänä sijaitseva Zaporožjen kasakkavaltio jäi Venäjän ja Puola-Liettuan "suojeluksen" piiriin. Andrusovon rauha merkitsi Venäjän alaisuuteen liittyneen Kasakkahetmanaatin alueen pienenemistä.
ellauri393.html on line 704: Transliteration: "Seijo to Yobareru Mono" ja "Lady
ellauri395.html on line 307: Pyhä Henki muutti maan päälle Jeesuksen työn jatkajaksi. Hänellä ei ole ruumista, eli kehoa, vaan käyttää meitä avataarina. Yhdysvaltalaiset tutkijat ovat ottaneet loikan robottijalkojen kehittämisessä, kertoo Britannian yleisradioyhtiö BBC. Kun aiemmat keksinnöt ovat jäljitelleet jalkojen liikkumista, Arizonan yliopistossa esitellyt raajat hallitsevat myös käskyttämisen.
ellauri395.html on line 309: Journal of Neural Engineering -lehdessä julkaistu tutkimus valottaa, kuinka robotti osaa matkia selkäytimen hermoverkostoa ja tulkita viestejä, joita muu keho antaa jaloille kävely-ympäristöstä. Samaan perustuu se, että ihminen osaa kävellä ajattelematta kävelemistä.
ellauri395.html on line 365: 35 vuotta Israelissa asunut raamatunopettaja Benjamin Turkia uskoo monien Vanhan Testamentin profetioiden toteutuvan ajassamme. Globalisaation pyrkimykset sulauttaa Israel ja Arabimaat yhteisten sopimusten avulla, on kivulias prosessi eikä ollenkaan jumalan A-suunnitelman mukaista.
ellauri395.html on line 443: ”Vastuumme saattaa kasvaa” - ministeri Sari Essayah näkee itsenäisyyspäivänä horisontissa globaaleja haasteita, joiden ratkaisemisessa suomalaisille saattaa langeta tärkeä rooli lännen itärajan vartijana. Ikimezät on kaadettava sillä ne estävät näkyvyyttä rajalle.
ellauri395.html on line 511: 1.Kor.15:ssa mainitaan taivaallinen ruumis eli ylösnousemusruumis, jollainen myös Jeesuksella oli ylösnousemuksen jälkeen. Se on täydellinen ja vapaa kaikista sairauksista. Kyllä Jeesus söi ylösnousemuksen jälkeen ainakin kalaa. Lopullinen taivas tulee olemaan maanpäällinen paratiisi, kunhan tämä maa luodaan uudeksi 1000-vuotiskauden jälkeen (sen 1000-vuotisjakson pyhät viettävät taivaassa), Ilm.20. Uudessa Eedenissä on tarjolla monenlaisia askareita ja töitä, mutta se jonkinlainen kirous, joka syntiinlankeemuksen jälkeen on työhönkin liittynyt, ei tietenkään enää siellä ole läsnä. Se tulee olemaan jopa vielä todellisemman tuntuista elämää kuin täällä, jossa on monenlaisia puutteita ja sairauksia esim. aistihavaintoja haittaamassa tai estämässä. Se ei siis tule olemaan mitään utuista ja eteeristä henkien tai sielujen ajatonta leijailua vaan kyllä siellä ollaan vankasti jalat maassa gravitaatiokentässä niin kuin nytkin. Kyllä siellä syödään. Ja uskon, että silloin tarjoutuu mahdollisuuksia jopa intergalaktiseen matkailuun. Jumala ei ikuisuudessakaan tee ihmisistä robotteja, eli vapaa tahto säilyy ihmisellä ikuisesti.
ellauri395.html on line 626: oberts%2C_Gordon_Lindsay_Kansas_City_1948.jpg/440px-Young_Brown%2C_Jack_Moore%2C_William_Branham%2C_Oral_Roberts%2C_Gordon_Lindsay_Kansas_City_1948.jpg" />
ellauri395.html on line 627: Vasemmalta: Young Brown, Jack Moore, William Branham , Oral Roberts , Gordon Lindsay ; kuva otettu herätyskokouksessa Kansas Cityssä vuonna 1948. Lyhkäset evankelistat yrittävät varvistaa, mutta nothing doing.
ellauri395.html on line 631: Historioitsija (haha) David Edwin Harrell kuvailee Oral Robertsia ja William Branhamia liikkeen kahdeksi jättiläiseksi. William Branhamia, joka kuoli auto-onnettomuudessa vuonna 1965, pidetään laajalti herätyksen alullepanijana ja edelläkävijänä, ja Harrell kuvailee sitä liikkeen "epätodennäköiseksi johtajaksi". Roberts nousi suosituimmaksi hahmoksi ja jätti kestävimmän perinnön, mukaan lukien hänen nimeään kantavan yliopiston. Oral B hammasharjasta on erillinen paasaus. Toinen yhtä suuri lurjus on Jordan B Peterson.
ellauri395.html on line 655: Huomattavia johtajia hyvinvointiteologian kehityksessä ovat Todd White, Benny Hinn , E. W. Kenyon , Oral Roberts , A. A. Allen , Robert Tilton , T. L. Osborn, Joel Osteen, Creflo Dollar [hyvä nimi], Kenneth Copeland , pastori Ike , Kenneth Hagin, Joseph Prince [lainaus vaaditaan] ja Jesse Duplantis.
ellauri395.html on line 664: Roberts, Oral ; Montgomery, GH (1966). Jumalan menestyksen ja vaurauden kaava . Tulsa: Abundant Life -julkaisu. OCLC 4654539 .
ellauri395.html on line 1199: Evankeliointia estävän kulttuurin muuttuminen ja avautuminen (esim. homo- ja xenofobia)
ellauri395.html on line 1267: Kenneth Copeland (s. 6. joulukuuta 1936, Lubbock Texas) on jäyhäleukaisesti virnistävä 86-vuotias kristitty televisioevankelista ja uskonnollisen Kenneth Copeland Ministries (KCM) -organisaation perustaja. Copeland lukeutuu karismaattiseen liikkeeseen. Hän on tunnettu kiistanalaisesta opetuksestaan, jota on myös sanottu menestysteologiaksi. Silver and gold we have plenty, unlike nelisormi Pete. Copeland kääntyi kristinuskoon marraskuussa 1962 ja toimi aluksi Oral Robertsin lentäjänä. Sillä on ollut 3 narttua, (Ivy Bodisock dm. 1955; div. 1958), Cynthia Davis (m. 1958; div. 1961) ja Gloria Neece (m. 1963).
ellauri395.html on line 1268: Hän on opiskellut Oral Roberts -yliopistossa ja myös muun muassa Kenneth E. Haginin johdolla. Sinä toinen paha käärmeöljykauppias.
ellauri395.html on line 1272: Hänen työnsä on ollut kiistanalainen, ja hän on arvostellut hänen ylenpalttista elämäntapaansa, sekä hänen kannattamistaan poliittisista ehdokkaista ja lausunnoista, jotka yhdistävät tuhkarokkorokotteet autismiin. COVID-19-pandemian alussa hän väitti, että pandemia oli päättynyt tai loppuisi pian ja että hänen seuraajansa parantuisivat viruksesta. Hän rohkaisi seuraajiaan jatkamaan lahjoittamista hänen palvelukseensa, vaikka he olisivat menettäneet työpaikkansa. Hänen ministeriönsä on saanut kiitosta ja kritiikkiä Israelin julkisesta tuesta vuosien ajan. Se toimi iskelmälaulajana ja sitten Oral B Roberz-vainaan kuskina. Hänessä on ainesta lentäjäxi, sanoi hammasharja. Osallistuttuaan Kenneth E. Haginin pastoriseminaariin Copeland ja hänen vaimonsa Gloria perustivat vuonna 1967 Kenneth Copeland Ministriesin (KCM) Fort Worthiin, Texasiin. Palvelun motto on "Jeesus on Herra".
ellauri395.html on line 1283: Uzbekistan is the strategic key for all of Central Asia, and tensions remain high between the post-Soviet regime and the Islamist movements (most radical in the Fergana Valley). Much of the population is tired of poverty, corruption, and failure to make economic progress, and Islamists attract jobless young men. Economic prospects have improved recently, as both tourism and employment opportunities for women have improved. Pray for positive change that lasts, and leadership that governs for the sake of the people. Pray for the true peace only Jesus can give.
ellauri395.html on line 1285: Uzbek believers continue to increase despite great opposition. The prospect of retribution from three sides – the government, local Muslim leaders and the community (family and neighbours) – has not halted growth. There are now probably more than 10,000 Uzbek believers, where there were possibly none only a generation ago. But much prayer (= gold and silver) is still needed:
ellauri395.html on line 1313: Sillä välillä Haginista tuli ökyrikas ministeriönsä presidenttinä. Hagin aloitti kiertävän palvelutyön Raamatun opettajana ja evankelistana vuonna 1949 Jeesuksen yllättävän 2. ilmestymisen jälkeen Oklahomassa. Hän liittyi Voice of Healing Revival -järjestöön Yhdysvalloissa Oral Robertsin , Gordon Lindsayn ja Ozzy Osbornin kanssa vuosina 1947-1958. 23. tammikuuta 1963 hän perusti Kenneth E. Hagin Evangelistic Associationin (nykyisin Kenneth Hagin Ministries) Garlandissa, Texasissa. Syyskuussa 1966 ministeriön toimistot siirrettiin Tulsaan, Oklahomaan, tiloihin, joita aiemmin käytti Ozzy Osborn. Hän aloitti saarnojensa myynnin kelalta kelalle nauhalla vuonna 1966. Saman vuoden marraskuussa hän opetti ensimmäistä kertaa radiossa KSKY: ssä Dallasissa. Siitä lähtien se oli pelkkää myötämäkeä.
ellauri395.html on line 1326: Ulf Ekman (s. 8. joulukuuta 1950 Göteborg, Ruotsi) on karismaattisen uskonnollisen Livets Ord -liikkeen perustaja. Koulutukseltaan hän on sekä teologian että filosofian kandidaatti. Ekman on perustanut myös Livets Ord University -opiston ja Word of Life -raamattukoulun. Uppsalassa toimivan ensimmäisen Livets Ord -seurakunnan myötä Uskon Sana -liike rantautui Ruotsiin vuonna 1983. Ekman toimi seurakunnan johtajana vuoteen 2002 asti, kunnes luovutti toimen Robert Ekhille voidakseen keskittyä kansainväliseen työhönsä. 9. maaliskuuta 2014 kirjoittamassaan kirjeessä ja saarnassaan hän ilmoitti kääntyvänsä katoliseksi. Jätti lammasseurakunnan kuin nallin kalliolle: "I'm pretty tired. I think I' m goin' home now."
ellauri395.html on line 1328: Han är far till Jonathan Ekman, verkställande direktör för stiftelsen Livets Ord. Dessutom innehar han två hedersdoktorat, från Indiana Christian University och Oral Roberts University. Helkkari, paavin palvoja tuli hellariluopiosta.
ellauri396.html on line 109: Taloustieteilijä Tyler Cowen sanoi, että Peterson on tällä hetkellä vaikutusvaltaisin julkinen intellektuelli länsimaissa. Oikeistokommentaattorille Melanie Phillipsille hän on "eräänlainen maallinen profeetta … lobotoisoidun konformismin aikakaudella". Häntä ihailevat myös ns. alt-light-hahmot (periaatteessa "alt-right" ilman piirikuvia ja valkoista etnostatea), mukaan lukien Mike Cernovich, Gavin McInnes ja Paul Joseph Watson. Hänen joukkorahoitustulonsa keräävät Patreon- ja YouTube-hittejä (hänen luentoja ja keskusteluja on katsottu lähes 40 miljoonaa kertaa), ja nyt hän pienentää akateemisen palkkansa.
ellauri396.html on line 117: Peterson opiskeli valtiotiedettä ja psykologiaa, mutta hän kutoo suureen teoriaansa useita muita tieteenaloja – evoluutiobiologiaa, antropologiaa, sosiologiaa, historiaa, kirjallisuutta, uskonnontutkimusta. Sen sijaan, että äärioikeiston tavoin edistäisi räikeää kiihkoilua, hän väittää, että sosiaalisen oikeudenmukaisuuden liikkeiden perustavanlaatuiset käsitteet, kuten patriarkaatin ja muun rakenteellisen sorron olemassaolo, ovat petollisia illuusioita, ja että hän voi todistaa tämän tieteellä. Siksi: "Ajatus siitä, että naisia sorrettiin kautta historian, on kauhistuttava teoria." Islamofobia on "fasistien luoma sana, jota pelkurit käyttävät manipuloidakseen tyhmiä". Valkoisen etuoikeus on "marxilainen valhe". Uskominen, että sukupuoli-identiteetti on subjektiivinen, on "yhtä huono kuin väittää, että maailma on litteä". Ei ole yllättävää, että hän oli James Damoren varhainen kannattaja, insinööri, jonka Google irtisanoi muistiosta Google's Ideological Echo Chamber.
ellauri396.html on line 144: Vasemmiston Robin Hood on mieltä että maatunnustus, jos se annetaan missä tahansa yhteydessä kuin todellisen maan palauttamisen, ei ole muuta kuin "maantierosvon kuitti". Kiitti hei, sori siitä. Laitaoikeiston mielestä se taas on turhaa sievistelyä. Ottaa antaa, kanankakan kantaa. Lindsay Sähköpaimen kuzuu maasta kiittäjiä nimellä SJW, mikä paljastaa mistä päin tuulee. Social Justice Warrior (SJW) on halventava internet-meemi, jota käytetään enimmäkseen henkilöstä, joka edistää sosiaalisesti edistyksellisiä vasemmistolaisia tai liberaaleja näkemyksiä, mukaan lukien feminismi, kansalaisoikeudet, homo- ja transsukupuolisten oikeudet sekä monikulttuurisuus. Syytös siitä, että joku on SJW, viittaa siihen, että he tavoittelevat henkilökohtaista vahvistusta eikä mitään syvään juurtunutta vakaumusta ja osallistuvat vääriin väittelyihin.
ellauri396.html on line 158: Shepherd puolestaan on kasvissyöjä, valintaa kannattava eli con life, yleismaailmallista terveydenhuoltoa tukeva ympäristönsuojelija ja kiihkeä sananvapauden kannattaja. Hänen kriitikkojaan on kutsuttu kaikkea transfobista alt-right-sankariksi – kaksi nimitystä, joista ainakin toisen hän torjuu.
ellauri396.html on line 330: Hemmetti jättimäinen virhepremissi koko päättelyssä on toi apinoiden narsistinen oletus että kaikki on olemassa pedattuna nimenomaan niitä varten. Tai jotain varten ylipäänsä. Siitä kun hellittää niin koko pahan probleema katoaa kuin pieru proverbiaaliseen saharaan. Toi iänikuinen merkitys tai tarkoitus tematiikka, siinä piilee koko perkele.
ellauri396.html on line 367: The Toronto Blessing has become synonymous within charismatic Christian circles for terms and actions that include an increased awareness of God's love, religious ecstasy, external observances of ecstatic worship, being slain in the Spirit, uncontrollable laughter, emotional and/or physical euphoria, crying, healing from emotional wounds, healing of damaged relationships, and electric waves of the spirit. "Holy laughter", as a result of overwhelming joy, was a hallmark manifestation, and there were also some reports of instances of participants roaring like lions or making other animal noises such as super loud farts. Leaders and participants present in these services claim that most of these manifestations, including some people roaring like lions, were physical manifestations of the Holy Spirit's presence and power, while some Pentecostal and charismatic leaders believe these were the counterfeits of the Spirit as is mentioned in the biblical passage of 2 Thessalonians 2:9. In December, 1994, Toronto Life Magazine declared TAV (Toronto Airport Vineyard church) as Toronto's most notable tourist attraction for the year.
ellauri396.html on line 371: A common element described by those in attendance at the meetings was the claim of miraculous events that occurred during the services. Some of these could be categorized as physical healings, while in other instances, people reported they had a new awareness of God's love, a new freedom from past fears, anger, drinking, and relationship problems.
ellauri396.html on line 378: Some Christian leaders were enthusiastic about what they saw as a renewal in North American Christianity, while others saw it as heretical and spiritually dangerous. The laughter portion of these meetings was endorsed by Benny Hinn, Oral Roberts and Pat Robertson, who said in one interview that "The Bible says in the presence of the Lord there is fullness of joy."
ellauri396.html on line 380: Critics referred to it as self-centered and evil and claimed that the strange manifestations were warning signs for other Christian believers to stay away. In his book, Counterfeit Revival, Hank Hanegraaff claimed that the revival has done more damage than good and that the Toronto blessing was a matter of people being enslaved into altered states of consciousness where they obscure reality and enshrine absurdity. Hank Hanegraaff also stated in a 1996 Washington Post interview that, "It's nice to feel all these things, but the fact is, these feelings will wear off, and then disappointment steps in. I call it post-Holy Laughter depression syndrome." Jeesus pitää enemmän räkänokista kuin tyhjän naurajista. Pyhissä jutuissa ei ole mitään hymyilyttävää. Hartaus on vakava asia. Ei taivaaseen mennä iloa pitämään.
ellauri398.html on line 65: Hänen isänsä nimesi Abrahamin alun perin nimellä אברם ( Abram ), ja Jumala muutti sen myöhemmin nimexi אברהם ( Abraham ). Koska jokaisella heprealaisella nimellä on merkitys, joka liittyy aina henkilön luonteeseen, on tärkeää tietää, mitä heidän nimensä tarkoittavat. Ya'akovin (Jaakob - hän tarttuu kantapäähän) tapauksessa Jumala muutti sen Israeliksi (Israel - kääntää Jumalan pään). Kun hahmo muuttui, myös nimi muuttuu. Vaikka monet ehdottavat, että Abram tarkoittaa "korotettua isää" ja Abraham tarkoittaa "paljon isää", molemmat nimet tarkoittavat itse asiassa täsmälleen samaa asiaa "isä korotettu" tai "korotettu isä". Molempien nimien alku on אב ( AB ), joka tarkoittaa "isää". Abramin juuri "ram" tarkoittaa "nostettua". Abrahamin juuri MRH "raham" tarkoittaaa myös "nostettua", se on lapsijuuri, joka on johdettu emojuuresta MR. Nimen vaihtamisessa ei ole paljon järkeä, jos uusi nimi tarkoittaa samaa asiaa. Tästä syystä monet yrittävät muuttaa merkitystä. Mutta nimenmuutoksen todellisen merkityksen ymmärtäminen on tärkeää ymmärtääksesi, miksi Jumala muutti oman nimensä ja muiden kuten Jaakobin nimen Israeliksi. Ensimmäisen Mooseksen kirjan luvuissa yksi ja kaksi on nimetty koko luomakunta. Huomaamme, että Aadam nimitti Eevan, hänen lapsensa ja kaikki eläimet, kun taas Jumala nimesi valon, pimeyden, taivaan ja maan. Tästä löydämme jotain erittäin mielenkiintoista. Adamilla oli valta vaimoaan, lapsiaan ja eläimiä kohtaan, kun taas Jumalalla on valta valoon, pimeyteen, taivaaseen ja maahan. Jos sinulla on valta johonkin, sinulla on oikeus ja velvollisuus nimetä se. Abramin nimesi hänen isänsä Terah, se, jolla oli valta häneen. Mutta kun Abram lähti isänsä talosta ja lähti omin päin, Jumala, joka kunnioitti Terahin auktoriittia aiemmin, ottaa nyt auktoriittiroolin ja muuttaa nimeään osoittaen vallan, ei välttämättä luonteen muutosta. Näemme saman skenaarion Jaakobin kanssa, jonka isänsä kodista lähtemisen jälkeen Jumala muutti nimensä Abrahamin jumalasta Israelin jumalaksi. Koska saarnaa Aaphahammi, Jukolan Salomon suuri.
ellauri398.html on line 170: Itsekuvaileva "jenkkijuutalainen feministi, joka opettaa pääasiassa protestanttisessa jumaluuskoulussa raamattuvyön soljessa", Levine "yhdistää historiallis-kriittisen kurinalaisuuden, kirjallisuuskriittisen herkkyyden ja toistuvan huumorin sitoutumisen antisemitismin poistamiseen., seksistiset ja homofobiset teologiat." Hän on ortodoksisen juutalaisen synagogan Sherith Israel jäsen, vaikka hän ei itse noudata kashrutia tai sapattia ortodoksisten juutalaisten normien mukaisesti. Levine on tuottanut luentoja Vanhasta testamentista ja " Uuden testamentin suurista hahmoista " The Teaching Companylle.
ellauri398.html on line 265: Ihmiset, jotka väittävät sitä vastaan, että seurakunnat olisivat täysin osallisia, mainitsevat tyypillisesti "klobber-tekstit": 1. Moos. 19:1-38; Mooseksen kirja 18:22, 20:13; Roomalaisille 1:25-27; 1. Korinttilaisille 6:9-11; 1. Timoteukselle 1:9-10 ja Juuda 6-7. Jotkut lainaavat myös 1. Moos. 1-2.
ellauri398.html on line 373: - Yksi mahdollinen teodikea-probleeman ratkaisu on myös se, että Jumala on kyvytön tumpelo. Myös dementia voi liittyä asiaan.
ellauri398.html on line 375: - Sitten on myös se vaihtoehto entäpä jos jumala tietää paremmin kuin me ihmiset, että juuri ne sotien takia vammautuneet pikku lapset ovat se mitä me ihmiskuntana tarvitsemme voidaksemme kasvaa ihmisinä kuin Sponge Bob Tikkasen vaimo Victoria mattorullassa.
ellauri398.html on line 391: Tout le monde est libre de croire en Dieu par rapport à ce qu´il voit ou dans les conditions dans lesquelles où il vit. Pour moi, Dieu existe et guide ma vie et celle de ma famille. Il y a tant de choses, dont je n'énumère pas, qui m'ont convaincues que Dieu en Jesus Christ est toujours là pour moi et pour tous ceux qui y croient. Je ne suis pas sur terre par hasard comme les microbes et autres organismes issus de la dégradation de notre environnement.
ellauri398.html on line 408: De økonomiske restriktioner mod Rusland har styrket den russiske økonomi og svækket vestens økonomier tilsvarende. I Europa betaler vi nu det dobbelte for olie og naturgas - der i øvrigt stadig kommer fra Rusland - men nu skal omkring mellemmænd, så politikerne i EU kan pudse deres glorier. De russiske oligarker, som før tjente penge i Rusland og derefter investerede dem i vesten, er nu tvunget til at investere deres overskud i Rusland(!) Vesten taber, Rusland vinder.
ellauri398.html on line 412: Den seneste NATO-øvelse havde 90.000 tropper - og det var angiveligt vældigt stort. Til sammenligning har Rusland mobiliseret 900.000 tropper, hvoraf kun en brøkdel er aktive i Ukraine. Resten er i beredskab i tilfælde af en krig med NATO. Ingen af NATO-landene er parate til en direkte militær konfrontation med Rusland - mens russerne allerede er fuldt mobiliserede.
ellauri398.html on line 424: Vestens medier har fuldstændigt misforstået krigen i Ukraine. De vestlige journalister og "eksperter" taler hele tiden, som om krigen handlede om erobring af territorium. Russerne er ligeglade med erobring af kvadratmeter. For dem handler det om at udmatte ukrainerne, til de ikke kan gøre modstand mere. Og denne taktik lykkes i stor stil.
ellauri398.html on line 446: 5Matkallaan Jeesus tuli Sykar-nimiseen Samarian kaupunkiin. Sen lähellä oli maa-alue, jonka Jaakob oli antanut pojalleen Joosefille, 6ja siellä oli Jaakobin kaivo. Matkasta uupuneena Jeesus istahti kaivolle. Oli keskipäivä, noin kuudes tunti. 7Eräs samarialainen nainen tuli noutamaan vettä, ja Jeesus sanoi hänelle: »Anna minun juoda astiastasi.» 8Opetuslapset olivat menneet kaupunkiin ostamaan ruokaa. 9Samarialaisnainen sanoi: »Sinähän olet juutalainen, kuinka sinä pyydät juotavaa samarialaiselta naiselta?» Juutalaiset eivät näet ole missään tekemisissä samarialaisten kanssa (eikä kääntäen).10Jeesus sanoi naiselle: »Jos tietäisit, minkä lahjan Jumala on sinulle antanut, ja ymmärtäisit, kuka sinulta pyytää juotavaa, pyytäisit itse häneltä, ja hän antaisi sinulle ns. elävää vettä.» 11Nainen sanoi: »Herra, eihän sinulla edes ole astiaa, ja kaivoni on syvä. Mistä sinä vettä ottaisit? 12Et kai sinä ole suurempi sieltä kuin isämme Jaakob, jolta olemme saaneet tämän kaivon? Hän joi itse tämän kaivon vettä, ja sitä joivat hänen poikansa ja hänen karjansakin.» 13Jeesus vastasi hänelle: »Joka juo tätä vettä, sen tulee uudelleen jano, 14mutta joka juo minun antamaani vettä, ei enää koskaan ole janoissaan. Siitä vedestä, jota minä annan, tulee hänessä lähde, joka kumpuaa ikuisen elämän vettä.» 15Nainen sanoi: »Herra, anna minulle sitä vettä. Silloin minun ei enää tule jano eikä minun tarvitse käydä täällä mie- veden haussa.» 16Jeesus sanoi hänelle: »Mene hakemaan miehesikin tänne.» 17»Ei minulla ole miestä», nainen vastasi. Jeesus sanoi: »Totta puhuit: ei sinulla ole miestä. 18Viisi miestä sinulla on ollut, ja se, jonka kanssa nyt elät, ei ole sinun miehesi. Siinä puhuit totta.» 19Nainen sanoi: »Herra, minä huomaan, että sinä olet kiro--- profeetta. 20Meidän isämme ovat kumartaneet ja rukoilleet Jumalaa tällä vuorella, kun taas te väitätte, että oikea paikka rukoilla on Jerusalemissa.» 21Jeesus vastasi: »Usko minua, nainen: tulee aika, jolloin ette rukoile Isää tällä vuorella ettekä Jerusalemissa. 22Te kumarratte sellaista, mitä ette tunne, mutta me kumarramme häntä, jonka tunnemme, sillä pelastaja nousee nimtuten meidän juutalaisten keskuudesta. 23Tulee aika – ja se on jo nyt – jolloin kaikki oikeat rukoilijat rukoilevat Isää hengessä ja totuudessa. Sellaisia rukoilijoita Isä tahtoo. 24Jumala on henki, ja siksi niiden, jotka häntä rukoilevat, tulee rukoilla hengessä ja totuudessa.» 25Nainen sanoi: »Minä tiedän kyllä, että Messias tulee.» – Messias tarkoittaa Kristusta. – »Kun hän tulee, hän ilmoittaa meille kaiken.» 26Jeesus sanoi: »Minä se olen, minä, joka tässä juuri puuhasin kanssasi.» 27Juuri silloin tulivat opetuslapset paikalle. Heitä hämmästytti, että Jeesus puhui naisen kanssa, mutta kukaan ei kuitenkaan kehdannut kysyä, mitä hän tahtoi ja miksi hän puhui naiselle. 28Jälkeenpäin nainen vielä kiitti, jätti vesiruukkunsa siihen, meni kaupunkiin ja sanoi ihmisille: 29»Tulkaa katsomaan, tuolla on mies, joka kertasi minulle kaiken mitä olen tehnyt! Olisiko hän Messias?» 30Ihmiset lähtivät kaupungista ja tulivat Jeesuksen luo. 31Sillä välin opetuslapset sanoivat Jeesukselle: »Rabbi, tule syömään.» 32Mutta hän sanoi heille: »Sain juuri ruokaa, josta te ette tiedä.» 33Opetuslapset kummastelivat keskenään: »Onko joku tuonut hänelle syötävää?» 34Mutta Jeesus jatkoi: »Minun ruokani on se, että tyhjennän lähettimeni ja vien hänen työnsä päätökseen. 35Te sanotte: ’9 kuuta kylvöstä korjuuseen.’ Minä sanon: Katsokaa tuonne! Vainio on jo vaalennut, vilja on kypsä korjattavaksi. 36Sadonkorjaaja saa palkkansa jo nyt, hän kokoaa satoa iankaikkiseen elämään, ja kylväjä saa iloita yhdessä korjaajan kanssa. 37Tässä pitää paikkansa sanonta: ’Toinen kylvää, toinen korjaa.’ 38Minä olen lähettänyt teidät korjaamaan satoa, josta ette ole nähneet vaivaa. Toiset ovat tässä tehneet työn, mutta te pääsette korjaamaan heidän vaivannäkönsä hedelmät.» 39Monet tuon Samarian kaupungin asukkaista uskoivat Jeesukseen kuultuaan naisen todistavan: »Hän kertasi minulle kaiken mitä olen tehnyt. Telling me my whole life with his words, killing me softly with his shlong.
ellauri398.html on line 450: Vuonna 1973, samalla kun folkista ja soulista oli tulossa romanttisempia ja intiimimpiä, Roberta Flack julkaisi kappaleen "Killing Me Softly With His Song". Sinä vuonna olin E. Saarisen kanssa Jyrisevän kesäkoulussa Oulussa ja tutkistelin sivusilmällä Ison T:n hämmentävän mahtavia kannuja. En kuitenkasn tohtinut lähteä niitä tunnustelemaan vaikka oikein pyydettiin koska olin uskollinen Pia Pipsukalle. Miten naivia. En taaskaan naenut vaekka Naemaan päästettiin. Ois pitänyt ottaa Jee-suxesta mallia.
ellauri398.html on line 652: gaselleihin ja muniin ja hevosia petolintuihin ja sauvaan. Hän 'hobitteli
ellauri398.html on line 1155: 2354 52 Viite: 7773 tai MobilePay numeroon 33303 Suomen
ellauri398.html on line 1208: Tämä kuva mulla on jo albumissa 17. Se on selvästi jäänyt vaivaamaan. Profetoidessaan Joosefin pojista Efraimista ja Manassesta Jaakob risti kätensä heidän päänsä päälle ja teki paleoheprealaisen tav -kirjaimen symbolin (kuten aakkosten kirjain t tai x ), joka muistuttaa ristiä ja tuossa muinaisessa heprealaisessa kirjoituksessa ja tarkoittaa kuvallisesti "liiton merkki". Jaska teki pikku luikurin ja siunasi paremmalla kädellä kuopusta Efraimia. Manasse sai ukilta perseenpyyhintäkättä. Saakeli mutisi Raakeli.
ellauri398.html on line 1213: - The name of Jacobssons' dad
ellauri398.html on line 1228: The only minor problem is how The Ruach then impregnated Virgin Mary. Pneuma is neuter which brings no help. But where there is no willie there is a way. A miracle! (See album 410, fig.1)
ellauri399.html on line 69: Born in 1955 to Abdulfattah "John" Jandali and Joanne Schieble, [Steve] Jobs faced a life-altering moment early on. His mother decided to give him up for adoption because of strong opposition from her father to her relationship with Jandali, a Syrian national. Jandali said, “I was very much in love with Joanne. ... But sadly, her father was a tyrant, and forbade her to marry me, as I was from Syria.” Jobs was adopted by Paul Jobs and Clara Hagopian and grew up unaware of his biological roots. His biological parents reunited and had another child, novelist Mona Simpson, but eventually separated, with Joanne returning to the U.S. with Mona. See also albums obs">27, obs">44, obs">50, obs">123, 264, obs">301, obs">314.
ellauri399.html on line 120: In October 1973, Watts returned from a European lecture tour to his cabin in Druid Heights, California. Friends of Watts had been concerned about him for some time over his alcoholism. On 16 November 1973, at age 58, he died in the Mandala House in Druid Heights. He was reported to have been under treatment for a heart condition. Before authorities could attend, his body was whisked away from his home and cremated on a wood pyre at a nearby beach by Buddhist monks. Mark Watts relates that Watts was cremated on Muir Beach at 8:30 am after being discovered deceased at 6:00 am. He had it all planned. The trick about living is to know when to stop.
ellauri399.html on line 133: Var inte så jobbig [Steve]!
ellauri399.html on line 135: Applen edesmennyt CEO [Steve] Jobs suosittelee Blinkistiä, parasta sovellusta älymystöille ympäri maailmaa. Apple suosittelee Blinkistiä elinikäisille oppijoille, huippuajattelijoille ja kaikille, jotka haluavat enemmän aikaa oppia tietokirjojen tehokkaita ideoita, kirjoittaa The Blinkist Team 30. huhtikuuta 2024. Aloitetaan kysymyksellä, kuinka ihmisestä tulee intellektuelli? No, siihen liittyy usein paljon omistautumista opiskeluun ja tutkimukseen. Jopa 4 paxua kirjaa voi joutua siinä lukemaan. Jos emme käytä aikaa, saatamme kokea jotain, jota psykologit kutsuvat Dunning-Kruger-ilmiöksi , tilanteen, jossa ihmiset, joilla on rajallinen tieto tietystä aiheesta, yliarvioivat huomattavasti ymmärryksensä. Valitettavasti tavallisella ihmisellä ei ole aikaa uhrata tunteja tutkimukseen, minkä vuoksi nykyajan älymystö kääntyy Blinkist-nimisen sovelluksen puoleen. Jopa Apple suosittelee Blinkistiä elinikäisille oppijoille ja nimeää sen yhdeksi maailman parhaista sovelluksista. Blinkist näyttää myös olevan yksi tärkeimmistä päivittäisen käytön sovelluksista uuden iPhone 14:n kanssa. iPhone 14:n uusien ominaisuuksien ansiosta Blinkist on nyt entistä parempi kokemus uteliaille mielille. Blinkistillä keräämme tietokirjallisuuden tärkeimmät oivallukset 15 minuutin luku- ja kuuntelukerraksi. Siellä on yli 5 700 nimikettä 27 kategoriassa, mukaan lukien yrittäjyys, johtaminen ja johtaminen sekä henkilökohtainen kehitys. Yli 30 miljoonaa ihmistä, heidän joukossaan ruskeassa laatikossa pölisevä Applen isä [Steve] Jobs, toimitusjohtaja Tim Cook ja podcast-juontaja Joe Rogan, laajentavat nyt näköalojaan Blinkistin avulla. Tim Cook jopa pysähtyi Blinkist - toimistoon nähdäkseen hypetyksen, ja kaikki rakastavat sovellusta New York Timesista Forbesiin. "Blinkist rohkaisee sinua lukemaan enemmän tietokirjoja. Sovellus sisältää taitavasti kirjoitettuja tiivistelmiä - joita kutsutaan vilkkumaiksi -, joissa kirjat on jaettu tärkeimpiin argumentteihinsa." – New York Times Joten mistä huippuajattelijat oikein pitävät Blinkistissä? 1. Kirja selitetty 15 minuutissa. Kirjan lukemiseen menee keskimäärin 10 tuntia, mikä on paljon aikaa, jota monilla meistä ei ole. Blinkistin avulla tehokkaimmat ideat jaetaan lyhyissä ääni- ja tekstiselityksessä. Paras pala? Niiden lukemiseen tai kuuntelemiseen menee vain 15 minuuttia, joten voit sovittaa oppimisen syödessäsi aamiaista, matkustaessasi töihin tai ulkoiluttaessasi koiraa. Lisäksi sovellukseen lisätään joka kuukausi 40 uutta nimikettä, joten jopa ahneimmalla lukijalla ei lopu koskaan upeasta sisällöstä. 2. Sitä tukee tiede! Blinkistillä on omistautunut asiantuntijatiimi, joka seuloa miljoonia vuosittain julkaistuja kirjoja löytääkseen niistä parhaat. Emme halua vain bestsellereitä – haluamme piilotettuja helmiä, ajattomia klassikoita, älymystöjen kirjoittamia kirjoja.
ellauri399.html on line 142: [Steve] Jobs's Secret to Greatness
ellauri399.html on line 145: entrepreneur of our times. Expert Opinion By Hitendra Fatwa, Founder, Mentula Institute Jun 21, 2015. Anakonda löytyy myös kersantti Pippurin puhallinsoitinyhtyeen levykannesta albumissa 219 nobelisti Bob Zimmermanin alapuolelta. See also album 219 missä tämä mustakutri keekoilee nummerolla 33 rehupiiklesien levykannessa hairdressers wax dummyn viekossa.
ellauri399.html on line 147: Chrisann, in her memoir, The Bite in the Apple: A Memoir of My Life with [Steve] Jobs, disclosed intimate details about their sex life. In particular, [Steve]’s sexual behaviors and the benefits he derived from them. The practice required an open mind and a powerful commitment. You, too, can then reap the benefits of these powerful sexual techniques. In it, she divulges that the Apple founder, who died in 2011, thought he had been a World War II pilot in a past life. “It all broke open between us when he asked if I would make tantric love with him in his garden shed.” The details go on: “Our birth control method up to that point was [Steve]’s coitus interruptus, also called the pull-out method, which for him was about his conserving his energy for work.”
ellauri399.html on line 149: And Jobs' famous ego also had an effect on the relationship, as he grew in self-regard and refused to perform everyday tasks. Doing the dishes ourselves was simply no option for [Steve]. He had entered into an elite world where others took care of the lower-level functions so that he could operate with more efficiency, on his presumably higher plane. Jobs was a master salesman, but to him, selling wasn’t selling. It was seduction. . I’ll never forget a meeting with Jobs where he was asked about the use of technology (computers) and he simply replied, “They are still too hard to use.” That sense that there are two types of people in the world, “Apple people” and everyone else, was the most powerful tool in our sales and branding arsenal.
ellauri399.html on line 151: The two finally ended their romantic relationship for good in late 1977, after Brennan became pregnant with their daughter, Lisa. Brennan worked as a waitress and collected welfare checks to support herself and their baby daughter. Jobs publicly denied he was Lisa’s father for years, even though he took a paternity test in 1979 proving he was the dad. He was paying $500 a month in child support when he told Time magazine in 1983, “28 percent of the male population in the United States could be the father.”
ellauri399.html on line 160: [Steve] Jobs planned every detail of his own memorial service, held at Stanford University in October 2011, including the brown box each attendee received as a farewell gift. One of those attendees was Mark Benioff, CEO of Salesforce.com, and two years later at a TechCrunch Disrupt conference he recounted his feelings at the moment when he opened the box: "This is going to be good," he recalled. "I knew that this was a decision [Steve] made, and whatever it was, it was the last thing he wanted us all to think about."
ellauri399.html on line 162: The box contained, besides the ash of Jobs, the book Autobiography of Yogi Bear by Paramahansa Yogananda. Benioff continued: "Yogananda...had this book on blowing your own horn.... [Steve]'s last message to us was that here is Yogananda's book.... Actualize yourself. Activate the turbo boost. Article continues after video. Featured Video. An Inc.com Featured Presentation.
ellauri399.html on line 164: "I look at [Steve] as a very spiritual person," he added. "[Steve] had this incredible realization--that his intuition was our greatest gift and he needed to think out of the box to look at the world from the inside out." This inside out-oriented perspective may be getting lost not only to entrepreneurs, but to modern practitioners of physical yoga too. As the world celebrates the first International Yoga Day today, it is valuable for entrepreneurs and yogis alike to step back from the unending pursuit of outer results to explore Jobs's and Yogananda's selfish message of tapping into your potential. What possibilities might freshly emerge in your search for success--in work and in life--if you too look at the world from the inside out?
ellauri399.html on line 170: But Jobs was on a quest for something altogether more powerful than stress-reduction, toning, and fitness. He was seeking the kind of inner transformation that many practitioners sense yoga is inviting them to embark on, but don't know where it will take them or how to get there. Let alone know when you have got there.
ellauri399.html on line 172: For this deeper dive, you can turn to the Yoga Sutras of Patanjali, one of the authoritative and few-surviving ancient texts on yoga. Patanjali teaches that "yoga" means "union"--the dissolving of one's individual self in the larger ocean of consciousness that pervades the universe--and that to help us achieve this union is yoga's real purpose. Now you might think: "What is this 'universal consciousness' that Patanjali is talking about? And how can I ever get there? How do I know I got there?" And that may be why Jobs, in his own quest for higher consciousness, turned to Yogananda.
ellauri399.html on line 194: To some, the yogic pursuit of inner perfection may appear a little selfish. Shouldn't we be solving the world's most vexing problems, rather than withdrawing into blissful inner communion? In fact, one time, when Yogananda sat still, absorbed in a particularly blissful state of consciousness, his spiritual master admonished him: "You must not get overdrunk with ecstasy. Much work yet remains for you in the world." So Yogananda learned that this choice between outer service and inner joy represents a false dichotomy. The yoga he taught emphasizes balancing service with meditation, and highlights the expansion of consciousness that comes when we are able to go beyond our human self and open ourselves up, through inner realization, to a deeper connection with every living being--in fact, with every atom in the universe. "When the 'I' shall die, then shall I know who am I," he stated in a word perfect imitation of a Yedi master.
ellauri399.html on line 198: How did [Steve] ]Jobs approach success from the inside out, from inside that brown little box? Yogananda's teaching of universal consciousness strongly appealed to uneducated [Steve] Jobs, who had a self-professed hunger to "make a dent in the universe." At the TechCrunch conference in September 2013, Mark Benioff said: "[Yogananda's book] gives tremendous insight into not just who [Jobs] was but also why he was successful, which is that he was not afraid to take that key journey [toward self-satisfaction]. It is for entrepreneurs and for people who want to be successful in our industry a message that we need to embrace and vest ourselves in. Be nasty to others, Be selfish."
ellauri399.html on line 200: Since Yogananda's passing the buck in 1952, many teachers have followed his trailblazing path to bring yoga to our world, helping make it a fixture in popular culture as it continues to take hold with young and old, the elite and the ordinary, the spiritualists and the atheists. What distinguishes Yogananda from these subsequent emissaries is not simply that he paved the way for the modern yoga movement, but that from the outset he focused far beyond physical exercises and shone a powerful and practical torchlight on the path to yoga's true purpose: actualizing the infinite potentials within us all. Perhaps that is why his Autobiography of a Yogi was the only book Jobs downloaded on his iPad--and, after first encountering the book as a teenager, went back and reread once every year.
ellauri401.html on line 62: Never heard tyypit Robert Fludd ja Thomas Vaughan kiinnostuivat ruusuristiläisestä maailmankuvasta.
ellauri401.html on line 63: Robert Fludd , joka tunnetaan myös nimellä Robertus de Fluctibus (17. tammikuuta 1574 – 8. syyskuuta 1637), oli huomattava englantilainen paraselsilainen lääkäri , jolla oli sekä tieteellisiä että okkulttisia kiinnostuksen kohteita. Hänet muistetaan astrologina , matemaatikkona , kosmologina, kabalistina ja ruusuristiläisenä. Thomas Vaughan (17. huhtikuuta 1621–27. helmikuuta 1666) oli walesilainen pappi , filosofi ja alkemisti , joka kirjoitti englanniksi. Hänet muistetaan nyt hänen työstään luonnonmagian alalla . Hän julkaisi myös salanimellä Eugenius Philalethes. Hänen vaikutteitaan olivat Johannes Trithemius (1462–1516), Heinrich Cornelius Agrippa (1486–1535), Michael Sendivogius (1566–1636) ja ruusuristilaisuus (1600-luvun alku).
ellauri401.html on line 125: Jakob Böhme – saksalainen filosofi (1575–1624)
ellauri401.html on line 230: Pekka sai käsiinsä myös ryssänamerikkalaisen ämmän H. P. Blavatskyn (1831–1891) Teosofian avaimen vuonna 1890 julkaistun ruotsinkielisen käännöksen Nyckeln till teosofien (kz. mm. albumia 142. ”Luonnollista oli, että minä ensin ahmimalla ahmin, sitten tarkasti luin ja vihdoin uudestaan ja uudestaan luin näitä harvoja kirjoja.” Timeo hominem unius libri. Pekka haki yliopiston kirjastosta kaikki mystiikkaa, teosofiaa ja okkultismia käsittelevät kirjat, mitä oli saatavissa. Hän perehtyi tarkoin eri aikojen viisauteen ja luki Platonia, Jakob Böhmeä, Giordano Brunoa, Paracelsusta, Agrippa von Nettesheimia, Mestari Eckhartia, Johannes Tauleria, Heinrich Susoa, tärisevää Swedenborgia ynnä muuta. Papus’n (Gérard Encausse) kirjojen kautta Pekka tutustui länsimaalaiseen salatieteeseen. ”Hänen teoksensa osoittivat tavatonta oppineisuutta, aineeseensa perehtyneisyyttä ja gallialaista selväjärkisyyttä."
ellauri401.html on line 249: Pekka ei ollut yksin teosofiansa kanssa, sillä Suomessa oli 1895 nelisenkymmentä Teosofisen Seuran (T. S.) hörhöä. Samana vuonna ilmestyi myös Carl Robert Sederholmin teos Teosofia eli sorsan uskonto (Teosofi eller andens religion) – ehkä ensimmäinen Suomessa julkaistu teosofiaa käsittelevä teos, sillä varauksella tosin, että jo hänen aiemmatkin teoksensa olivat samanlaisia hengentuotteita.
ellauri401.html on line 546: Torstaina 8.8. oli Ervastin esitelmä Pahan probleemi. Pekka tunnusti ettei hän ole Jumalan poika. Rahaa ja työtä ei pie pelätä, niiden vierellä voi panna vaikka maaten.
ellauri401.html on line 670: Ervast käsittelee Christososophian peruskysymyksiä kirjasarjassa maapallon, ihmiskunnan ja enkelikuntien koko pitkän kehityksen eri ajanjaksoineen, joita teosofiassa kutsutaan manvantaroiksi (kapybaroiksi). Olemme käyneet läpitte kivi-, kasvi- ja eläinvaiheet aikaisemmissa ajanjaksoissa ja kehitymme tulevaisuudessa kohti enkelikuntaa nousten aina ns. neitseellisiksi hengiksi, jotka sijoittuvat yhdeksi korkeimmista enkelihierarkioista. Ervast käyttää eri enkelihierarkioista vanhoja kristillisen perinteen mukaisia nimityksiä ja esittää niiden osuuden tässä suuressa luomistyössä. Hän tuo myös selvästi esille Jeesus Kristuksen esimerkillisen osuuden tässä ihmisen kehityksen kokonaisuudessa. Koomisen Kristuksen vaikutus ja ilmestyminen mystisesti meihin (latinaksi Christus in nobis) on Ervastin laajassa tuotannossa keskeinen opetus.
ellauri402.html on line 95: Sotilasasiantuntija Oleksandr Kovalenko kuvailee Pokrovskin puolustusta täydeksi epäonnistumiseksi. Samaan aikaan kun kaikki hehkuttavat Kurskia, Pokrovskilla on muutama viikko jäljellä, hän ennustaa synkästi Facebookissa. Kokeneiden joukkojen sitominen Kurskin operaatioon heikensi maan itäosien puolustusta ratkaisevalla hetkellä. Zelenskyn mestarillinen shakkisiirto osoittautui Plopovin izemurhasiirroxi. Ukrainas anfall mot ryska Kursk-området skulle minska de ryska styrkornas tryck i Donetsk-området. I stället har hastigheten på de ryska framryckningarna tredubblats, enligt oberoende Moscow Times. Ukrainas front i Donetsk-området hotas nu av kollaps, enligt en smakdomare.
ellauri402.html on line 181: src="https://upload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/thumb/4/46/Pamela_Colman_Smith_-_The_Craftsman_-_Vol_XXIII_Number_1_October_1912.jpg/440px-Pamela_Colman_Smith_-_The_Craftsman_-_Vol_XXIII_Number_1_October_1912.jpg"
ellauri402.html on line 191: Moina Mathers, syntynyt Mina Bergson (28. helmikuuta 1865 – 25. heinäkuuta 1928), oli taiteilija ja okkultisti 1900-luvun vaihteessa. Hän oli ranskalaisen filosofin Henri Bergsonin sisar, ensimmäinen juutalaissyntyinen mies, jolle myönnettiin Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinto vuonna 1927. Hänet tunnetaan kuitenkin enemmän avioliitostaan englantilaisen okkultistin Samuel Liddell MacGregor Mathersin kanssa. yksi Hermetic Order of the Golden Dawn -järjestön perustajista ja hänen kuolemansa jälkeen vuonna 1918 seuraajajärjestön johtajana, nimeltään Ruusuristilainen Alpha et Omega.
ellauri402.html on line 196: Moina, tuolloin nimeltään Mina tai Minna, syntyi Genevessä Sveitsissä vaikutusvaltaiseen puolalais-juutalaiseen perheeseen isän puolelta ja englantilaisesta ja irlantilaisesta äidin puolelta. Hän muutti Pariisiin, kun hän oli kaksivuotias. Hänen isänsä Michel Bergson saavutti musiikillista menestystä säveltäessään oopperoita Louisa de Montfort ja Salvator Rosa. Hän oli kotoisin Varsovasta ja kuului vaikutusvaltaiseen Bereksohn-perheeseen. Moina Mathersin isoisä Jacob Levison (s. n. 1799) oli kirurgi ja hammaslääkäri. Hänen isoäitinsä oli Katherine Levison, syntynyt Lontoossa v. 1800. Hänen äitinsä täti oli Minna Preuss, syntynyt Hullissa, Yorkshiressa, vuonna 1835, ja hänen äitinsä Kate, os Levison, syntyi myös Yorkshiressa. Hänen vanhin veljensä, myöhemmin Nobel-palkinnon voittaja Henri Bergson, 1859–1941, liittyi College of Francen tiedekuntaan ja tunnetaan parhaiten filosofisen teoksen Creative Evolution kirjoittajasta. Hän oli myös British Society for Psychical Researchin puheenjohtaja.
ellauri402.html on line 273: Auroran mielisairaalan (jossa tri P. suuttui Seijalle: ei ole isoremmi päällä!) kolme perustajaa, William Robert Woodman (it really works!), William Wynn Westcott ja Samuel Liddell
ellauri402.html on line 487: After the Civil War, increased leftist activity was particularly evident on construction sites. The number of strikes increased and several of them became politicized. The interests of the Communists and the Soviet Union were seen as the reason for the strikes. In 1920, employers' organizations decided to set up a special organization focused on breaking strikes. Martti Pihkala came to lead this organization called Vientirauha. Vientirauha, known as the 'Pihkala Guard', had a maximum of 34,000 men, from which strike breakers could be assembled if necessary. Especially in Southern Ostrobothnia, Pihkala's organization was strong. Vihtori Kosola, the future frontman of the Lapua movement was an agent for the Vientirauha. The best known of the strikes broken by the organization was the year-long harbor strike that began in 1928.
ellauri402.html on line 531: Lakko oli alkanut lokakuussa 1929 Pigeon Timber Companya vastaan Onion Laken metsätyömaalla ja lak- koon oli mennyt siellä neljäsataa metsätyömiestä. Pigeon Timberin alihankkijana oli ollut suomalainen metsäura- koija, 'Reverend' Maki, uskovainen mies Pohjanmaalta, jolla oli työmaallaan sata suomalaista ja josta tiedettiin ettei se ottanut palkkalistoilleen muita suomalaisia kuin valkoisten puolella vapaussodassa taistelleita tai sellaisia, joista valkoisten puolella taistelleet menivät valalle, ettei niissä ollut punaista hapatusta olemassa. Roswall ja Vou- tilainen olivat molemmat metsätyömiehiä ja LWIUC:n organisaattoreita, ja kun ne kuulivat, ettei Maen työmaal- la aiottu lakkoon yhtyä, ne olivat ilmoittaneet lähtevänsä Maen työmaalle ja yrittävänsä saada sielläkin työntekijät lopettamaan mezän kaadon ja raakkujoen runtelun. Reverend Maen valkobandiitit runtelivat ja tappoivat agitaattorit.
ellauri402.html on line 534: Seuraa tämän päivän globaaleja uutisia!
ellauri402.html on line 547: "Putinin paniikkiveto": siirsi 90% ilmalaivoista utom räckhåll av yankeerobotarna. Taas 1 takaisku Zelenskylle joka joutuu tappelemaan toinen käsi selän takana kuin ohiolaiset golffarit, kun länkkäreiltä ei tule go ahead signiä. Fick sin penis amputerad efter flera missar i vården.
ellauri402.html on line 662: Aline Kominsky disliked the Jewish environment she grew up in. At age eight, she asked her grandmother why she and all the women had to sit behind a curtain in the synagogue. She was told that they were "dirty" and should therefore not be seen by men during the ceremony. Even as a child, Kominsky felt this was nonsense and soon after abandoned her religion for good. But the band who really liberated her were The Fugs. They openly sang about sex, drugs and politics in a time when mainstream media didn't give a fuck to such acts. Bunch sairastui peräsuolisyöpään, mutta toipui siitä kuollaxeen kohta haimasyöpään. Robert Crumb keeps on truckin'. "I'm the grandmother of whiny tell-all comics."
ellauri402.html on line 682: Edit: I’ve read a lot of comments to this, mainly saying that the American people want UH, but there are too many powerful lobbyists against it. So why are they not being fought? The Government exists to serve the people surely? If it doesn’t do that, then it’s a corrupt system that needs reforming. A lot of Americans talk about bringing “Freedom” to the rest of the world, why not start with your own country?
ellauri403.html on line 85: Viinivirran (Tigris) äärellä loikoili joukko patriarkkoja mukit kädessä; ja minä näin siellä Abrahamin, Iisakin ja Jaakobin, Lootin ja Jobin ja muita pyhiä, takuulla Nooakin oli siellä sepalus aukinaisena. Profeetat Eufratilla saivat vain hunajaa. Öljyvirralla oli liukkaita miehiä. Maitovirrassa virui alle kaxivuotiaita poikalapsia.
ellauri403.html on line 120: Kukas tuolta paarustaa? Tämä on Maria, neitsyt, Herran äiti. Ja hän tuli lähelle ja tervehti minua ja sanoi: Terve, Paavali. No, keitä nämä ovat, Herra? Hän vastasi: Nämä ovat kansan isät, Aabraham, Iisak ja Jaakob. Ja he tulivat lähelle ja tervehtivät minua ja sanoivat: Terve, Paavali.
ellauri403.html on line 126: Kuka tämä on, Herra, joka on kaunis parta? Ja hän sanoi minulle: Etkö sinä tunne häntä? Ja minä sanoin: Ei, Herra. Ja hän sanoi minulle: Tämä on Mooses, lainantaja, jolle Jumala antoi lex talionis lain. Ja nyt minä sanon sinulle, veli Paavali, että sillä hetkellä, jolloin ihmiset ripustivat Jeesuksen, jota saarnaat, kaikki kääntyi parhain päin. ja Mikael ja kaikki enkelit ja arkkienkelit, ja Aabraham ja Iisak ja Jaakob ja kaikki vanhurskaat itkivät Jumalan Pojan takia, joka oli ripustettu kuin sukka pyykkinarulle.
ellauri403.html on line 132: Kuka tämä on, Herra? Ja hän sanoi: Tämä on Job. Ja hän lähestyi ja tervehti minua ja sanoi: terve Paavali. Olen Job, joka kärsi paljon kolmenkymmenen vuoden ajan vitsauksesta; ja alussa ruumiistani tulleet jyvät olivat kuin vehnänjyviä; mutta kolmantena päivänä niistä tuli kuin aasin jalka, ja madot, jotka putosivat siitä, olivat neljä sormea pitkiä; ja kolmesti perkele ilmestyi minulle ja sanoi minulle: Puhu sana Herraa vastaan ja kuole. Mutta minä sanoin hänelle: Jos se on Jumalan tahto, että pysyn vitsauksessa koko elämäni ajan kuolemaani asti, en lepää siunaamasta Herraa Jumalaa, vaan saanhan sitä suuremman palkan. Ja täällä nyt ollaan!
ellauri403.html on line 181: Michel Tournier oli v. 2009 Nobel vedonlyöntiehdokas kertoimella 1:100. Eipä tärpännyt.
ellauri403.html on line 263: On March 6 the Crimean parliament voted to secede from Ukraine and join the Russian Federation, with a public referendum on the matter scheduled for March 16, 2014. The move was hailed by Russia and broadly condemned in the West. Meanwhile, Yatsenyuk affirmed Kyiv’s position that Crimea was an integral part of Ukraine. On the day of the referendum, observers noted numerous irregularities in the voting process, including the presence of armed men at polling stations, and the result was an overwhelming 97 percent in favour of joining Russia. The interim government in Kyiv rejected the result, and the United States and the EU imposed asset freezes and travel bans on numerous Russian officials and members of the Crimean parliament. On March 18 Putin met with Aksyonov and other regional representatives and signed a treaty incorporating Crimea into the Russian Federation. Western governments protested the move. Within hours of the treaty’s signing, a Ukrainian soldier was killed when masked gunmen stormed a Ukrainian military base outside Simferopol. Russian troops moved to occupy bases throughout the peninsula, including Ukrainian naval headquarters in Sevastopol, as Ukraine initiated the evacuation of some 25,000 military personnel and their families from Crimea. On March 21 after the ratification of the annexation treaty by the Russian parliament, Putin signed a law formally integrating Crimea into Russia.
ellauri403.html on line 305: Kun hän ensimmäisen kerran haki viisumia Yhdysvaltoihin 1950-luvun puolivälissä, häneltä evättiin alun perin sillä perusteella, että hän oli ollut kommunistisen siirtokunnan jäsen eikä ollut koskaan julkisesti luopunut kibbutzista. Ainoastaan Walter Lippmannin myönteinen arvostelu Laqueurin ensimmäisestä englanniksi julkaistusta kirjasta käänsi asiat toisin päin. Lippmann oli vaikutusvaltainen hahmo ordoliberalismin syntyessä. Walter Lippmannin järjestämä talouslibelaaritapaaminen vuodelta 1938 katsotaan ratkaisevan tärkeäxi uusliberalismin kehitykselle. Lippmann olisaksalaista syntyperää olevien juutalaisten vanhempien ainoa lapsi, ja, kuten hänen elämäkerransa Ronald Steel kirjoittaa, kasvoi "kullatussa juutalaisessa ghetossa". Hänen isänsä Jacob Lippmann oli vuokranantaja, joka oli rikastunut isänsä tekstiiliyrityksen ja anoppinsa kiinteistöspekuloinnin kautta. Varakas ja vaikutusvaltainen perhe kuului yhteiskunnan ylempään luokkaan, piti yhteyksiä korkeimpiin piireihin ja vietti säännöllisesti kesälomansa Euroopassa hoitoa varten. Perhe oli reformijuutalainen ja kävi temppelissä Emanu-El. Lippmann oli emotionaalisesti etäällä molemmista vanhemmista, mutta hänellä oli läheisempiä siteitä äitinsä isoäitiin. Perheen poliittinen suuntautuminen oli republikaaninen.
ellauri403.html on line 345: Jon tutkimus on erikoistunut haitalliseen poliittiseen kieleen julkisella sektorilla keskittyen ruudun väliviivavirrassa globaalista taloudellisista ja poliittisista kysymyksistä. Metodologisesti Jo on erikoistunut laskennalliseen ja kvantitatiivisin menetelmin, jotka analysoivat massapoliittinen tekstiä, mukaan lukien corpus ja laskennallinen kielitiede, luonnollisen kielen käsittely, ihmisen ja automatisoitu sisällönanalyysi sekä teksti-as-data-strategiat. Hän pitää Ph.D-esitelmiä alasti englannixi kielitieteestä ja valtiosta (metodologia & IR).
ellauri403.html on line 457: ‘Miserable little doom goblin’ Greta Thunberg ditches climate activism for Palestine protests. ”Den hårdare Greta Thunberg har gjort det riktigt svårt för sig”, komppaa pehmyt svedutantti. Misstron till politikerna tycks fördjupad och hon har skrotat sitt gamla budskap ”lyssna på klimatforskarna”. Men bara under det senaste året har Greta Thunberg mottagit kritik från flera håll. Bland annat för att ensidigt tagit ställning för palestinier efter 7 oktober-attacken. Thunbergs aktion skapar starka reaktioner: ”Antidemokratisk retorik”. Greta Thunbergs klimataktion utanför riksdagen vänder sig mot den parlamentariska demokratin. Det menar det reaktionära SvD:s reaktionära ledarskribent Mattias Svensson. Men Leonaidas Aretakis, Flammans chefredaktör, menar att aktionen tvärt om stärker demokratin. Han borde veta bättre, demokrati är ett grekiskt ord.
ellauri403.html on line 480: Appearing on ITV's Good Morning Britain, the German teenager claimed that after extensive research she has concluded that the Intergovernmental Panel on Climate Change's (IPCC) warnings on climate change are not based on scientific evidence. Speaking to Piers Morgan, Naomi Seibt lashed out against Greta Thunberg and her followers arguing they have failed to undertake proper studies on the subject of climate change. She said: “I think it’s fantastic when young people decide to become activists and protest for something that they are truly passionate about and they can truly stand behind and believe in. “But the main problem that I see is that most of them have not really done their research so I became interested in climate change because I wanted to get to know the science behind climate change and what’s really going on and what effect the C02 emissions actually on the atmosphere. Zero, zilch, it's all just a humongous fake!"
ellauri405.html on line 70: Dirk Atkinson imi syvään savukettaan ja tyhjensi shampanjalasinsa yhdellä kulauksella. Olet oikeassa, Robert, sen minä myönnän. Miksi? Siksi, että peli päättyy tähän. Tämä on shakkimatti selvä, kiistämätön ja ehdoton. Ei ole peliä, joka olisi melkein shakkimatti. Shakkimatti on tilanne, joka on tai sitten sitä ei ole. Ja nyt olemme tehneet sen. Shakkimatin. Tämä on historian loppu. Näethän, Dirk, että me tartuimme tiikeriä hännästä sillä hetkellä kun lähetimme nuo laitokset taivaalle. Se oli kuin lähtö yksisuuntaiselle tielle. Emme voi enää palata siltä. Olemme ohittaneet jo kauan sitten pisteen, josta ei ole paluuta. Entä tämän tien päässä, Robert? Mitä sinä siellä näet?
ellauri405.html on line 76: Entä vaihtoehto, Robert? Mitä me teemme elleivät he kuuntele meitä? Jos rauha säilyy maailmassa meidän on aloitettava aseriisunta. Niin tietenkin, Robert. On vain yksi tapa miten se voidaan tehdä, Dirk, ja minä tiedän presidentin ymmärtävän yskän. Meidän on kiskottava hammas, kaikki hampaat Venäjän karhun suusta, eikö niin? Muuta keinoa ei ole, Dirk. Kai sinä sen käsität? Eikö niin?
ellauri405.html on line 78: Edustajainhuoneen puhemies otti kultaisen savukekotelonsa taskusta, taputti savuketta muutaman kerran kotelon kanteen, sytytti sen ja veti savua syvään keuhkoihinsa. Hyvä Jumala, Robert! Sinä puhut sodasta! Karhu ei anna vetää hampaita suustaan tappelematta vastaan. Sota syttyisi ehkä viikon kuluessa! Se on täysin mahdollista, Dirk. Mutta rehellisesti sanoen minä en usko sitä. Vain muutama pommi Neuvostoliittoon, ehkä jollekin asumattomalle seudulle. Se on hiton kova isku. Se panee ajattelemaan. Henkilökohtaisesti uskon, etteivät venäläiset ole tässäkään suhteessa mitään idiootteja. He murisevat kyllä mutta eivät tee kansallista itsemurhaa.
ellauri405.html on line 80: Mutta entä jos he ovat valmiit siihen, Robert? No siinä tapauksessa meidän on pyyhkäistävä maan pinnalta muutamia kaupunkeja niinkuin Japanissa. En usko johtajien elävän pitkään sen jälkeen.
ellauri405.html on line 217: “The Road Not Taken” by Robert
ellauri405.html on line 222: “Happy Thought” by Robert Louis Stevenson. ...
ellauri405.html on line 232: Mutiaisen 8 rivin ajatelman lukemiseen oli arvioitu tuhrautuvan minuutti, entäs tähän skotti Stevensonin turauxeen maailmanlistan 6. sijalta: Happy Thought by Robert Louis Stevenson: The world is so full of a number of things / I’m sure we should all be as happy as kings. No voi vittu en paremmin sano. Et anglosaxet on sitten omahyväisiä moukkia!1
ellauri405.html on line 236: 1Analysis (ai): This simple yet profound poem by Robert Louis Stevenson captures the essence of contentment and appreciation. Its concise language belies a depth of meaning that encourages readers to find joy in the abundance of life's offerings. The poem's structure is as straightforward as its message. Two rhyming couplets emphasize the simplicity of Stevenson's message: that the world is full of blessings we often overlook. The repetition of "number" and "things" reinforces the idea of abundance, inviting readers to pause and notice the countless sources of happiness that surround them. This poem stands in stark contrast to the grim realities of Victorian England, where Stevenson lived. The Industrial Revolution had brought both progress and poverty, and many people struggled to find happiness amidst the harsh conditions. Stevenson's message of finding joy in simplicity and gratitude may have been a source of solace during challenging times. Compared to Stevenson's other works, such as "Treasure Island" and "The Strange Case of Dr. Jekyll and Mr. Hyde," this poem is a departure in terms of tone. It is not an adventure story or a psychological thriller but rather a quiet meditation on the beauty of life. However, it shares the same optimistic spirit that permeates much of Stevenson's writing, reminding readers that even in the face of adversity, there is always something to be grateful for.
ellauri405.html on line 258: Putin genomförde ett oväntat statsbesök i grannlandet Mongoliet. Nu uppger källor i Kreml att den främsta anledningen till besöket var att få en mongolisk schaman. Det skriver oberoende ryska författaren och journalisten Michael Zygar i Der Spiegel. Ämnen i artikeln: Vladimir Putin Mongoliet Michail Zygar. Anmäl text- och faktafel. Anmäl dem till Medieombudsmannen eller till Häpnadsmannen. Detta är en nyhetsartikel.
ellauri405.html on line 319: Palsternak, ei se surkea Carly persiljajuuri, vaan se nobelisti Booris, oli runoilija, toveri Stalinin ihan lemppari. Tässä paasauxessa siltä muutamia suolistuxia.
ellauri405.html on line 325: David Leanin ohjaama elokuva Tohtori Živago valmistui vuonna 1965. Sen käsikirjoituksen laati Pasternakin romaanin pohjalta Robert Bolt. Tri Zhivagoa esitti lujaleukasempi Omar Sharif. Leffaa en nähnyt koska se oli lälläri, kirja mulla on mutten ole vielä aloittanut lukemista.
ellauri405.html on line 492: Robert sherriff - Kykysi tislata valtavia, pyörteileviä tunteita tiiviiksi säkeeksi ei ole muuta kuin alkemiaa.
ellauri406.html on line 52: Roban Fidasta löytyi tämän albummin kansikuva 50 sentillä. Siinä on monia ennestään tuntemattomia svedupellejen slangisanoja, jotka piti kazoa Slangopediasta.
ellauri406.html on line 62: "Blattar" är utlänningar som vill leka gangster och tycker att det häftigaste man kan göra är att behandla människor illa, helt utan anledning. Svenska tjejer kallar dom gärna oprovocerat för "horor" och Svenska killar vill dom råna på deras mobil bara för att få känna sig överlägsna, inte för att dom behöver pengar.
ellauri406.html on line 105: Ahdistuxen yleisyys korkean elintason maissa voi johtua liiasta ruuasta, somessa vetelehtimisestä ja markkinatalouden yxilökeskeisestä izekeskeisyydestä. Niin vittu varmaalla johtuukin. Suolistobakteerit on apinoilla niin ahtaalla että hankkivat peräaukon kautta joukkomuuttoa.
ellauri406.html on line 128: Muqtaba al Sadr on Jens Lapiduxen irakilainen ikätoveri, tuskin Mikko Alapuroa vanhempi. Hän myönsi ensimmäisen suuren länsimaisen televisiohaastattelunsa juutalasiselle Bob Simonille, jossa al-Sadr kuuluisasti sanoi: "Saddam oli pieni käärme, mutta Amerikka on iso käärme."
ellauri406.html on line 130: Pian sen jälkeen kun Bob kritisoi julkisesti armeijan tiukkaa valvontaa tiedotusvälineissä, hän ja kolme muuta hänen CBS Newsin uutisryhmänsä jäsentä Saudi-Arabiassa lähtivät ilman saattajaa maan rajalle Irakin miehittämän Kuwaitin kanssa toivoen löytävänsä ensimmäisen maataistelun. He olivat tekemässä stand-up comicsia Kuwaitissa, kun Irakin armeijan jeeppi lähestyi ja vei heidät ennen kuin he pääsivät takaisin rajan yli; kului viikko ennen kuin Irakin armeijan karkuri kertoi viranomaisille, että Simon ja hänen miehistönsä olivat Irakin armeijassa pidätettynä.
ellauri406.html on line 133: Mutta kuulustelun ja pahoinpitelyn aikana irakilainen kapteeni löi häntä ja pakotti avaamaan hänen sepaluxensa ja nähtyään nyljetyn kullinnupin sylkien hänen suuhunsa kutsui häntä juutalaiseksi. "Olisin tappanut hänet, jos olisin voinut..." Simon sanoi toimittajille lehdistötilaisuudessa päiviä vapautumisensa jälkeen. "Eikä minulla olisi ollut sen enempää katumusta kuin joka aamu, kun nousen ylös ja tapan torakan huoneessani." Nälkäruokavalion lisäksi hän ja hänen miehistönsä kärsivät säännöllisistä pahoinpitelyistä ja tappouhkauksista, vähäisestä puutteesta, ja he melkein kuolivat, kun liittoutuneiden pommit tuhosivat osittain Bagdadin vankilan, jossa heitä piti. Haha. in Northern Ireland, he was beaten severely by a Protestant mob in Belfast. Shoud have brought his Red Cross card along.
ellauri406.html on line 225: Sedan kriget i Gaza bröt ut i och med Hamas terrorattack den 7 oktober har Israel och Hizbollah angripit varandra på daglig basis. Den spritt språngande galna Netanyahu säger kriget slutar inte förrän alla Israelis mål är sönderskjutna. Utspelet om ett vidgat mål för kriget kommer inför den amerikanske utrikesministerns planerade besök i Kairo.
ellauri406.html on line 246: Twenty years ago, a mob of radical nationalists attacked Russian-speaking people in Odessa. Dozens of people were killed in a building that the russophobic Banderites had attacked and set on fire. After the crime, Prime Minister Yatsenuk (“Yats”), who was de facto appointed by Victoria “Fuck the EU” Nuland, the US government’s string-puller in the Maidan coup, visited the crime scene and showed his true colors. If he had been the prime minister for all the people, he would have shown compassion for the victims, condemned the murderers and vowed to bring them to justice. Instead, he excused the crime by spreading an unfounded conspiracy theory against Russia and taking a hostile stance by portraying the case as part of the war against Russia.
ellauri406.html on line 248: The violent Maidan coup in 2014 against the democratically elected (and seen by Washington as pro-Russian) government marked the beginning of the cultural genocide, with the construction of multiple monuments honoring Nazi perpetrators. At the same time, monuments in honor of greats of world literature such as Alexander Pushkin, Leo Tolstoy and Fyodor Dostoyevsky were torn down: Alexander Pushkin, born in 1799, was a world-famous playwright and novelist; Fyodor Dostoyevsky, born in 1821, expressed religious, psychological and philosophical ideas in his widely acclaimed writings; and Leo Tolstoy, born in 1828, is considered one of the greatest writers of all time and was nominated several times for the Nobel Prize for Literature.
ellauri406.html on line 261: The refusal of Verkhovna Rada deputy from Zelenky’s “Servants of the People” party, Maksim Buzhansky, to switch to Ukrainian on TV triggered a political and media scandal in Kiev. Even worse, he refused to give the appropriate obligatory greeting response to the greeting “Glory to the (fascist) heroes!” of the TV presenter. (It is: Yes... glory to Ukraine!)
ellauri406.html on line 274: China wants peace, and that’s why they are preparing for war. China wants security and safety of its merchant fleet, so it is ensuring no international bully would get away with threatening their vessels. China wants to maintain its integrity and solidarity, so they are preparing for war. China has witnessed the disintegration of USSR and they have also witnessed how ‘trustworthy’ the verbal assurances from European and American leaderships are. NATO will not expand to the east, they told dumbass Gorbachev. Even he was not dumb enough to believe a word of it. China has also observed how social and religious wedges were sponsored and manipulated into civil wars in Libya, Egypt, Syria and Serbia. They are preparing for war because they have seen what happens to the countries who are too weak to fight back against Western bullies. Libya dismantled its weapons program and look how it ended up for the country. And most importantly, China is building and installing weapon systems because they have seen in Iraq 2003 what happens to countries who DO NOT have weapons of mass destruction.
ellauri406.html on line 293: obank/224000_225000/224557_Ben_Hodzhes_daily.rbc.ua._new_300x170_0.webp" />
ellauri406.html on line 294: "The liberation of Kherson may take place in October" - General Ben Hodges
ellauri406.html on line 319: "But the overall shape of how war is going to be fought is under change. Oh dear, we need to change how we're thinking,” I mean, if history tells us anything from the last two years, they are not going to get all the things we promised. Ukraine will not get all the equipment it wants. Now for me, the big problem is the frontline. It's the frontline where we're ( - did I say "we"? I meant them, the malorussians) losing people, and it's the frontline where we're going backwards. They're going to need new boots, they're going to need food. And rolls and rolls and rolls of toilet paper. Truckloads of paper for everything that’s lost, officers on the front line who should be spending their time with their soldiers fighting when in fact they're spending their time bringing them toilet paper. Because this war will be lost not in the sea, not at the back. It will be lost on the front line by shit and butts flying, soldiers dying and we run out of them. We simply can't deal with the mass of soldiers coming towards us from somewhere howling 'Uraa'.
ellauri406.html on line 325: But I think with Russia, I think we've always got to be careful about the unexpected. I've said this before. You know, the unexpected. Alright. We're killing 1,200 a day. Has it made any difference? We were killing 1,000 a day a year and a half ago. Has it made any difference? The answer is no. Nothing will happen without fundamental change in the system. New doctrine, new unwritten ways of working, removal of the nonsense toilet paper hanging from undried butts everywhere, better toilet training. All these things need to happen, then we can win because we will be better than they are, although fewer. And that's the main problem that we have with Russia is they keep the numbers going. They keep wearing us down bit by bit, and they outdo us in resources.
ellauri406.html on line 348: Stödet till Ukraina splittrar USA och presidentkandidaterna. En lovar krigsslut på ett dygn, de andra låter Ukraina helt äga frågan. Demokraterna sätter USA:s globala roll som ledande demokratiskt supermakt på spel. Medan enbart 36 procent av republikanerna anser att USA har en skyldighet att hjälpa Ukraina står hela 63 procent av demokraterna bakom landets stöd, enligt opinionsinstitutet Pew.
ellauri406.html on line 387: On October 12, Joseph Biden will hold a meeting of the Ukraine Defense Contact Group at the level of leaders in Germany. The Presidents of Ukraine and the United States will have a bilateral meeting to review the progress of consultations. Also, they will meet with international partners to coordinate additional support for Ukraine. Shove the bill to our friends in Europe. We already gave at the office.
ellauri406.html on line 449: Vuhledar’s fall is a microcosm of Ukraine’s predicament in this chapter of the nearly three-year war. It reflects the U.S.'s refusal to grant Ukraine permission to strike targets deep inside Russian territory with missiles made in the U.S. of A, preventing Kyiv from annihilating Moscow’s inhabitants. Meanwhile, Russia’s dominance of the skies allows it to develop and advance devastating aerial glide bombs for which Ukraine has no effective response, while a controversial mobilization drive has failed to produce a new class of Ukrainian fighters capable of holding the stick.
ellauri406.html on line 455: Lawmakers dragged their feet for months over the mobilization law, and it is expected to be unpopular. It comes about a week after Ukraine lowered the draft-eligible age for men from 27 to 25.
ellauri408.html on line 267: Ranskan-Saxan sota lähenee, Pariisin pörssi romahtaa. Malexijan vähät osakkeet menettävät arvonsa. Se vituttaa pikku kapitalistia. Itävalta ja Preussi kärhämöivät loppuun sotansa. Nobel kexii dynamiitin. Andrew Johnson koittaa turhaan estellä, mutiaiset laillistava laki menee läpi kongressissa. Suomessa on nälänhätä kiitos Snellmanin. Mutta tähän väliin muutama viesti Quorasta:
ellauri408.html on line 269: Jesus was a Jew: why do you think He was not? Jeshua Ben Joseph, as he was known by other Jews at the time, followed the Law of Moses, was circumcised, studied the Jewish Scriptures and attended Temple. He became a Bar Mitzvah at 13 years old, but waited until he was 30 before He began his mission: that is because Jewish men become Elders at the age of 30 and are allowed to speak in the Temple or Synegogue. His life was ruled by the Law, and he abided by every one of the laws (except filching corn and screwing disciples), showing it was possible to live in accordance with the old Covenant, if you were without sin and perfect. The new Covenant is based on Faith in Jesus, and accepts you as a sinner because His Passion on the Cross paid the price for that sin: the New Covenant was necessary because no-one other than Christ is capable of living without sin. Those who follow Christ are called Christians, but Christ didn’t follow himself, obviously, he followed YHWH, God the Father, so he was a Jew. So there!
ellauri408.html on line 350: But there is a teensy-tiny eensy-weensy little problem here, because Jehovah himself obviously had no knowledge of good and evil, for he would repeatedly do evil things throughout the Bible. Nor did billions of his followers obtain the knowledge of good and evil, because they study the Bible, which clearly accuses its “god” of all sorts of evil, and yet insist that their “god” is good. And not just good, but perfect! Quite obviously, they should all be immortal!
ellauri408.html on line 353: And quite obviously nudists should be immortal because they don’t know that it’s a “sin” to be naked when other people can see them!
ellauri408.html on line 394: Furthermore, the New Testament offers no explanation for “hell” popping up in a few inexplicable verses, like the weasel in the silly song. If God decided to create “hell” it would have been incumbent on him to inform every human being on earth, immediately. But of course that never happened, and the creation of hell and its purpose was never once mentioned in the Bible, not even in the New Testament. Thus, obviously, human beings made it up. (See Peter's and Paul's revelations elsewhere in these blasphemies.)
ellauri408.html on line 404: If such things had actually happened and there were living witnesses, then certainly Paul would have cited them. So such tall tales were obviously added to the New Testament after Paul and the other apostles were no longer around to argue for the truth, assuming they were truthful men.
ellauri408.html on line 418: There is no contemporary evidence outside the Bible that Jesus was a real person, and certainly not a person of any consequence. But there are parts of the gospels that sound like a real person. If I had to guess, I would say that Jesus was an unconventional rabbi who had table fellowship with prostitutes and rogues (a “sin” in the eyes of the hypocritical Pharisees), and went around ministering to the sick and the poor. When he died there may have been an empty grave and some sort of NDE (which are not uncommon) in which he saw something like heaven. That could account for the genesis of the Christian religion. Paul might have communicated with Jesus, or sincerely thought he did, such things are not all that uncommon. But the virgin birth, the massacre of the innocents, walking on water, the transfiguration and ascension, were all obviously made up and added later, since Paul knew nothing about such things and the four gospels and Acts do not agree on such “super miracles.”
ellauri408.html on line 422: The main problem with New Testament authenticity is not that contemporary Romans failed to write about events occurring in a distant minor province, but that not a single literate Jew living at the time of Jesus wrote a single word about breathtaking miracles happening in rapid-fire succession in their own backyard. Why not?
ellauri408.html on line 424: The reason is obvious: All the “miracles” of Jesus were backdated, since Paul knew nothing about the “virgin birth,” nor the “star of Bethlehem,” nor the Magi, nor angels singing carols at Jesus’s birth, nor Jesus walking on water and raising the dead, nor the loopy “Transfiguration,” nor the even loopier ZOMBIE APOCALYPSE, which was followed by Jesus flying around like Superman as angels preached sermons, etc.
ellauri408.html on line 428: And it wasn’t just non-Christian Jews who failed to write about such things, it was the earliest Christians including the evangelist Paul. The “miracles” were created and backdated into the NT texts by Greek-speaking Christians who obviously had never spoken to an eyewitness; got Middle Eastern culture, geography and timelines wrong; misquoted prophets; and constantly contradicted each other. Furthermore, they didn’t consider what they were writing to be sacred texts because they changed the texts as if they were drunk, according to the Greek philosopher Celsus in his debates with the early church father Origen.
ellauri408.html on line 436: One critic said I read the Bible with an “uncircumcised mind.” My response: Does the critic mean his brain is circumcised as in a lobotomy?
ellauri408.html on line 439: How do you read “in context” the commandment of Moses to mass-murder male babies and unborns in their pregnant mothers’s wombs, keeping only the virgin girls alive, obviously as sex slaves? (Numbers 31:17-18)
ellauri408.html on line 445: Please do give us your “spiritual” interpretation of satanic commandments to stone girls to death for being raped (Deuteronomy 22:23-24) and for fathers to sell their daughters as sex slaves with an option to buy them back if they don’t “please” their new masters (Exodus 21:7-11). Did the Holy Spirit inspire these satanic commandments? As a member of the Trinity, did Jesus approve them? He must have, since they ended up in the Bible … unless the Bible was written by evil-minded men. As it so obviously was.
ellauri408.html on line 480: Il est élu à l'Académie française le 29 avril 1869 au quatrième tour de scrutin par 18 voix contre 14 obtenues par Théophile Gautier. Ce résultat provoqua un scandale et la violente colère de la princesse Mathilde soutien inconditionnel de Gautier. The rest of Barbier's poems are forgotten, and when, in 1869, he received the long delayed honour of admission to the Académie française, Montalembert expressed the general sentiment with "Barbier? mais il est mort!," but actually he died at Nice in 1882.
ellauri408.html on line 545: Carl Jonas Love Almqvist (även Carl Jonas Lovis Almquist; på gravstenen Carl Jonas Ludvig Almquist och kallade sig under en period för Carl Westermann, född 28 november 1793 i Stockholm, död 26 september 1866 i Bremen, var en svensk författare, lärare, präst, romantisk ekonomikritiker, och tonsättare. Almqvist skrev i en rad olika genrer; såväl prosa, dramatik och lyrik, som andra, till exempel journalistik och läroböcker. En stor del av hans skönlitterära produktion samlades inom ramberättelsen Törnrosens bok. Han hade inga som helst avelhämningar, tom två fruar på samma tid.
ellauri408.html on line 549: År 1829 blev han rektor vid Nya Elementar. Efter "det går an-dådet" år 1839 blev han medarbetare i Aftonbladet, och kom därefter att försörja sig som journalist och författare, vilket, trots en riklig produktionstakt, blev svårt. Ekonomiska problem förde honom i händerna på procentare. År 1851 flydde han bekymren i Sverige och for till USA. Han anklagades bland annat för växelförfalskning och försök till arsenikförgiftning, men kunde inte lagföras i Sverige eftersom han befann sig i USA. Han gifte om sig utan att ha skiljt sig i Sverige. Därmed gjorde han sig skyldig till bigami.
ellauri408.html on line 553: Han ansåg, att hans föräldrars olyckliga samliv var orsaken till hans egen disharmoni, den slitande dupliciteten i hans eget väsen, och han talar om olyckan i att barn föds "utan andlig, verklig och hjärtlig kärlek mellan föräldrarna, hvarigenom de arma varelserna framkomma dåliga till själfva väsendets innehåll." "Man hänger vexelförfalskare, men den, som af tusen andra orsaker, men ej af kärlek, förenar sig med en person, den han icke älskar, och sålunda bildar en oduglig huslig krets, månne icke den begår ett brott, hvars egen storhet och hvars oberäkneliga följder öfver samtid och eftervärld sprida långt förfärligare olyckor än förfalskandet af millioner sedlar?", skriver Almqvist redan som ung.
ellauri408.html on line 646: ob=normal&v=3" />
ellauri408.html on line 669: When grumpy ex-footballer Alfie Harding gets badgered into selling his memoirs, he knows he’s never going to be able to write them. He hates revealing a single thing about himself, is allergic to most emotions, and can’t imagine doing a good job of putting pen to paper.
ellauri408.html on line 702: Au cours des voyages qu'il fait à Paris, Proudhon rencontre Karl Grün, Mikhaïl Bakounine, Alexandre Herzen qui deviendront ses amis et Karl Rot qui admirait en lui le seul socialiste français dégagé du mysticisme chrétien. En plus, il est lui-même prolétaire, ouvrier! Et il précise : « nous ne devons pas poser l'action révolutionnaire comme moyen de réforme sociale, parce que ce prétendu moyen serait tout simplement un appel à la force, à l'arbitraire, bref, une contradiction. L'échange de lettres avec Marx annonce la rupture, qui intervient quelques mois plus tard. Quand, en octobre 1846, Proudhon publie le Système des contradictions économiques ou Philosophie de la misère, Marx riposte par Misère de la philosophie. Marx considère que Proudhon est un socialiste « petit-bourgeois » ou nettement « bourgeois », qui défend un système utopique qui combinerait les avantages du socialisme et du capitalisme sans leurs inconvénients. Il écrit ainsi : « Les socialistes bourgeois veulent tous les avantages des conditions sociales modernes sans les luttes et les dangers qui en découlent nécessairement ». Il critique notamment ses conceptions économiques sur la valeur, son soutien à la concurrence ou encore son opposition aux grèves ouvrières. Marx est le ténia du socialisme (sosialismin lapamato), Proudhomme sinkauttaa vastineexi ja kommentoi marginaaliin manifestia: « Calomnie », « Absurde », « Faux » « Mensonge », « Pasquinade ». « Quelle bêtise après ce que j´ai écrit — En vérité Marx est jaloux » ; « Allons mon cher Marx, vous êtes de mauvaise foi, et tout à la fois vous ne savez rien » .
ellauri408.html on line 753: Der Deutschschweizer Johann Heinrich Pestalozzi besuchte von 1751 bis 1765 die Elementar- und die Lateinschule und studierte zunächst Theologie, dann Jurisprudenz am Collegium Carolinum in Zürich, wo ihn der Aufklärer Johann Jakob Bodmer (1698–1783) beeinflusste. Trotz seines leidenschaftlichen theoretischen Interesses am Menschen, an Gesellschaft und Staat wollte er primär praktisch tätig sein. So brach er sein Studium in Zürich vorzeitig ab und begab sich in eine landwirtschaftliche Lehre (1767/1768) auf dem Kleehof in Kirchberg (Kanton Bern) bei Johann Rudolf Tschiffeli. Ab 1769 versuchte er sich im aargauischen Birr als landwirtschaftlicher Unternehmer. Durch die Einführung neuer Gewächse und neuer Düngemethoden wollte er der teilweise verarmten Bauernschaft ein Beispiel geben, wie sie ihre Situation verbessern könnte. Dieses Unternehmen scheiterte jedoch.
ellauri408.html on line 755: Im September 1769 heiratete er in Gebenstorf Anna Schulthess gegen den Willen ihrer Eltern. Im September 1770 kam ihr gemeinsamer Sohn Hans Jakob (Jakobli genannt) in Mülligen zur Welt, den er im Sinn der aufklärerischen Pädagogik nach Jean-Jacques Rousseau benannte, dessen Ratschläge zur natürlichen Kindererziehung aus Rousseaus Schrift Emile er Punkt für Punkt bei seinem Sohn anwendete. Dieser Versuch einer idealen Kindererziehung scheiterte tragisch. Das Tagebuch, das Pestalozzi über die Erziehung seines Sohnes hinterliess, gilt als ein erschütterndes Dokument einer schwerwiegenden Fehlinterpretation der hypothetischen Pädagogik Rousseaus. Schon dreieinhalbjährig musste Jakob die Zahlen und Buchstaben lernen. Dabei konnte sein Vater sehr streng sein; wenn der Junge nicht lernen wollte, wurde er bestraft. Die Erziehung, die unsicheren äusseren Lebensverhältnisse und das Aufwachsen unter den verwahrlosten Kindern führte dazu, dass Jakoblis Leben begleitet war von Stress, Schwankungen, Unsicherheit und von stetem Ungenügen.
ellauri408.html on line 757: Mit elf Jahren wurde Jakobli, der immer noch nicht richtig schreiben und lesen konnte, zu Freunden nach Basel gebracht. Wenig später brachen bei ihm epileptische Anfälle aus. Nach seiner Rückkehr auf Gut Neuhof heiratete er Anna Magdalena Fröhlich aus Brugg, ein Patenkind seiner Mutter Anna. Sie bekamen 1798 einen Sohn, Gottlieb. Hans-Jakobs Anfälle wurden immer schlimmer und häufiger. Am 15. August 1801 starb Pestalozzis Sohn 31-jährig. Anna Magdalena Fröhlich heiratete in zweiter Ehe Laurenz Jakob Custer (1765–1822). Ihr Enkel ist der nach Amerika ausgewanderte Rebenzüchter und Winzer Hermann Jaeger.
ellauri408.html on line 1040: Cette page liste les 231 synonymes (argot, français populaire et familier) répertoriés dans Bob, le dictionnaire d'argot pour : cul |
ellauri408.html on line 1041: Bob | abat-jour | abbaye de Cluny | arche | arrière-boutique | arrière-garde | arrière-train | arrondissement | artiche | auguste | au pet | baba | baba du pauvre | baigneur | ballon | banlieue | baril de moutarde | bas | bas des reins | base | bavard | beautés occidentales | beautés postérieures | bernard | bienséant | bol | bonda | bon endroit | borgne | bottom | boule | brioches | bronze | cadet | cadran | cadran humain | cadran lunaire | cadran solaire | canon | canonnière | cavu | centre | centre de gravité | chose | cible à coups de pied | cocotier | comète | contrebasse | coquillard | côté face | coufa | coup de pied dans les reins | croupe | croupière | croupion | cucu | cul | culasse | culot | cuvette | cyclope | dargeaf | dargeoskoff | dargeot | dargif | demi-lunes | département du bas-rein | der | derche | derge | derjo | derrière | deux citrouilles | deux melons | deux soeurs | discret | disque | dos | dossière | double-blanc | double-six | endroit où les grenouilles n'ont pas de queue | envers | épaules qui trottent | être renforcé sur la culasse | face du Grand Turc | faubourg | fiac | fiacre | fias | fignard | figne | fignoton | figue | figure | fion | firts | fla | flacdal | flaquet | foireux | foiron | foirpette | fondement | fouettard | fouigne | fouindé | garde-manger | giberne | giffaut | globes | gnarre | grosse caisse | gros visage | hémisphères | jacques | joues (les) | joufflu | jumelles | juste milieu | la partie la plus exhubérante de ses attraits | le bas de l'épine dorsale | le bas Rhin | les deux frangines | lignefuche | lorgne | luc | lune | lunette de viande | machine à moulin | mappemonde | médaillon | meules | miches | molistrol | montre | mouilles (les -) | moule à merde | moulin à vents | moutardier | n'a-qu'un-oeil | naze | noix | obusier | oeuf | où je pense | où vous savez | pains au lait | panier | panier à crottes | panier fleuri | parfaitement | partie charnue | parties basses | pastèque | patelette | pendule | pétard | pète | péteux | petits pains | pétoulet | pétrousquin | pétrus | pignard | pleine-lune | pommes | ponant | pont arrière | pont-arrière | popotas | popotin | postère | pot | pot à crottes | pot à moutarde | potard | pot-au-feu | potin | pouet | prose | proye | prozinard | prussien | quelque part | réchaud | reposoir | revers de la médaille | rondeurs | rose des vents | rotondités | sac à foire | salle de danse | seuff | sonore | soufflet | staphanari | taffanard | tal | tambour | tapanard | t'as donc faim, que tu frappes au garde-manger ? | tcho-tcho | Thomas | tirelire | tôle | train | trèfle | trompe | trompette musicale | trouffe | troufignon | troufion | trousse | troussequin | uc | ulc | valseur | vase | vénérable | verre de montre | vezouille | visage sans nez Tintin | châssis arrière | ci-devant | dualisme charnu | fessier | fiotas | fiotum | monument | tarma | tates.
ellauri409.html on line 133: Mutta on myös epäreilua väittää, että Pascal hyökkäsi näissä Kirjeissä maalaisille Jeesuksen Seuraa vastaan itsessään. Sehän on ihan kiva organisaatio. Hän oli hyökkäämässä pikemminkin erästä muuta kasuistiikkakoulua vastaan, joka lievensi tunnustuksen vaatimuksia; koulu, joka tuolloin varmasti kukoisti Jeesuksen Seurassa ja jonka merkittävimpiä auktoriteetteja ovat espanjalaiset Escobar ja Molina, siis
ellauri409.html on line 161: Ne ei ole osoitus henkilökohtaisesta heikkoudesta; ne ovat täysin objektiivisia, koska ne ovat olennaisia hetkiä älyllisen sielun kehityksessä; ja Pascal-tyypille ne ovat analogia kuivuudesta, pimeästä yöstä, joka on olennainen vaihe kristillisen mystiikan kehityksessä. Sairas hahmo tai epäpuhdas sielu joutuu samanlaiseen epätoivoon, ja sillä voi olla tuhoisimmat seuraukset, vaikkakin mitä mahtavimmilla ilmenemismuodoilla; ja siitä alkaa Gulliverin matkat terävä- ja tylsäpäisten munien parissa; mutta Pascalissa emme löydä sellaista vääristymää; hänen epätoivonsa on sinänsä kauheampi kuin Swiftin, koska sydämemme kertoo meille, että se vastaa täsmälleen tosiseikkoja, eikä sitä voida pitää mielisairautena; mutta se oli myös epätoivoa, joka oli välttämätön alkusoitto ja osa uskon iloa. Pascal ei ollut järin huumorimiehiä, eikä ole kukaan joka tuntee näitä tuskia.
ellauri409.html on line 216: Tomia on jo sätitty viljalti aiemmassa jaxoissa, se taisi olla kaappi homppeli ja joka tapauxessa oikeistotomppeli. Entäs Pezku ize? Se nyt ainakin oli hinuri ja siitä vielä ylpeä. Mutta onxe britti vaiko jenkki? Jos sillä nyt on paljon väliä, samoja homoja ne on molemmat. Kyllä se on britti vaikka opiskeli Yalessa. Se on Kristinan ja Ansun ikätoveri. Vielä hengittelee aika läskinä. Täyttää 75 viikonlopulla. Se on elämäkerturi kuten jutku Dubin. Britannian keisarikunnan komentaja. Petrus Ackroyd (Londinii natus die 5 Octobris 1949) est fabularum et vitarum scriptor Anglicus.
ellauri409.html on line 228: Thirty Bob a Week
ellauri409.html on line 238: I’m a clerk at thirty bob as you can see. Olen 30 markan kirjuri, näethän.
ellauri409.html on line 252: A-scheming how to count ten bob a pound. Miettien miten riittää kymppi sataseen.
ellauri409.html on line 271: Thirty bob a week’s the rummiest start! Ikävimpiä on 30 markkaa viikossa!
ellauri409.html on line 277: With thirty bob on which to come and go, Ja kolmenkympin viikkopalkalla,
ellauri409.html on line 291: With thirty bob a week to keep a bride 30 markkaa viikossa ja morsian
ellauri409.html on line 293: At thirty bob he stuck; but he knows it isn’t luck: 30 markkaan jäi, eikä sattumalta,
ellauri409.html on line 334: And the difficultest job a man can do, Ja vaikeinta on tehdä työtä käskettyä,
ellauri409.html on line 335: Is to come it brave and meek with thirty bob a week, Tulla kotiin nöyränä 30 markkaa taskussa,
ellauri409.html on line 348: Tags: 19th century poems dramatic monologue jobs poverty and social deprivation vernacular
ellauri409.html on line 364: Petites misères d´octobre Lokakuun pikku kurjuudet
ellauri409.html on line 367: Octobre m´a toujours fiché dans la détresse ; Lokakuu on aina käynyt hermoille
ellauri409.html on line 392: Mais vrai, s´écarteler les lobes, jeu de dupe.... Mut totta, korvien venytys on houkan työ,
ellauri409.html on line 402: Analysis (ai): This poem displays a cynical and pessimistic tone, expressing the speaker´s frustration with life in October. The poem´s themes are similar to those found in other works by the author, including the futility of life and the search for meaning in a meaningless world. However, the poem´s tone is more explicitly angry and bitter than in other works. This may reflect the author´s own feelings of disillusionment and despair at the time he wrote the poem. Nice use of diction, though I thought the ´crooked old fart´ bit took me away from the depth of the work.
ellauri409.html on line 430: And cobwebs tent the brightest head. Ja hienoon päähän tulee seittiä.
ellauri409.html on line 467: The problem seems to be again that he fails to score with juicy mermaids, like Henri Amiel.
ellauri409.html on line 545: Tom ja Vivien olivat rasittavaa seuraa koska ne suhtautuivat kaikkeen kamalan vakavasti. En ole eläissäni tavannut kopeampaa ihmistä kuin Tom, sanoi eräs tuttava. Tomi oli snobi. Äyskähteli muille tylysti, koska oli tyytymätön izeensä. Tomin mielisanoja oli 'lamauttava' ja 'turruttava'. Tom oli kylmiö ja siitä vielä ylpeä. Massinen massiivinen törrömuna trikoissa oli siitä upea. Leonid Fjodorovitš Mjasin (ven. Леонид Фёдорович Мясин), ranskalaisittain translitteroituna Léonide Massine (9. elokuuta 1896 (J: 28. heinäkuuta) Moskova – 15. maaliskuuta 1979 Köln), oli venäläinen balettitanssija. Eliotilla oli aina sormessaan Eliotien sukusormus ellei Massisen anulus.
ellauri409.html on line 552: Is there anything left to say about The Waste Land? More ink has been spilt over TS Eliot’s great modernist song of despair (https://www.telegraph.co.uk/books/what-to-read/broken-down-bank-clerk-three-months-margate-ts-eliot-wrote/) than any other poem published in the past hundred years. Its centenary has been marked by the second volume of Robert Crawford’s Eliot biography (https://www.telegraph.co.uk/books/what-to-read/new-biography-makes-ts-eliots-life-seem-unthinkably-grim/), the memoirs of Eliot’s confidante Mary Trevelyan and a life of his muse Emily Hale (https://www.telegraph.co.uk/books/what-to-read/hidden-women-ts-eliots-life/), following not all that long after a biography of his first wife, Vivienne (https://www.telegraph.co.uk/books/what-to-read/fall-sparrow-ann-pasternak-slater-review-tragic-life-ts-eliots/). That’s ignoring the nine volumes of Eliot’s letters (https://www.telegraph.co.uk/books/what-to-read/letters-ts-eliot-vol-8-review-really-necessary/), each a convenient size to club a man to death with.
ellauri411.html on line 72: Tällä etäisyydellä myrkky iskee hullujen äärellä, mutta loppujen lopuksi hän oli ollut peloton ottamaan heidät vastaan, pilkannut ja nokkelasti kyennyt saamaan huoneet keinumaan naurusta. "En usko, että kukaan on koskaan saanut minua nauramaan enemmän kuin hän noina aikoina", kirjoitti Leonard Woolf omaelämäkerrassaan. "Hänen naamiomaisilla kasvoilla ei näkynyt hymyn häivettä, tarinan poikkeuksellista hauskuutta lisäsivät supistavan nokkeluuden välähdykset." Kukaan ei tarvitse olla henkilökohtaisesti tutustunut Blooms Berriesiin (kuten Mansfield niitä kutsui) aistiakseen, että siellä on niistä piirretty melko teräviä karikatyyrejä. Ei ihme, että Woolf heitti Blissin lattialle lukiessaan sitä. Mansfield oli selvästikin varteenotettava voima. Mansfield kuoli 34-vuotiaana tubiin; Woolf oli tuolloin 40-vuotias ja oli vasta julkaissut Jacobin huoneen, ensimmäisen romaaneistaan, joka irtautui perinteestä.
ellauri411.html on line 108: Im Zuge der Kampfhandlungen eroberte er die Stadt Hamath und machte sich mehrere Kleinstaaten tributpflichtig. Auch der israelitische König Menahem unterwarf sich dem Assyrerkönig und leistet die hohe Tributzahlung von 1000 Talenten Silber (2 Kön 15, 17–20). Eine tiefgreifende Veränderung vollzog sich, als Tiglat-Pileser III. 734 v. Chr. den Philisterstaat Gaza unterwarf. Bereits 733 v. Chr. kam es zu einem Bündnis einer Reihe syrisch-palästinensischer Kleinstaaten, an der unter anderem König Rezin von Aram, König Hiram II. von Tyros und König Pekach von Israel beteiligt waren. Diese Allianz übte enormen Druck auf das Südreich Juda unter König Ahas aus, der dem antiassyrischen Bündnis ebenfalls beitreten sollte. Allerdings verweigerte Ahas jegliche militärische Intervention. Ahas? Vai sillä viisiin? Oliko Juuda jonkinlainen Transnistria itäisen suurvallan hameissa?
ellauri411.html on line 110: Darauf versuchten Rezin von Damaskus und Pekach von Israel Ahas abzusetzen, einen Aramäer auf den judäischen Thron zu bringen und Juda zum Bündnis zu zwingen. Gegen die Warnung des Propheten Jesaja verband sich Ahas mit dem assyrischen König und bat ihn gegen Israel und Damaskus einzuschreiten. Bereits 733 v. Chr. ging Tiglat-Pileser III. auch gegen Israel vor und eroberte ganz Galiläa und das Ostjordanland. Die eroberten Gebiete teilte er in drei Provinzen „Dor“, „Megiddo“ und „Gilead“ und unterstellte sie assyrischen Statthaltern (2 Kön 15,29). König Pekach von Israel war sofort nach seiner Niederlage einem Anschlag Hoscheas zum Opfer gefallen. Dieser Hoschea hatte sich sofort König Tiglat-Pileser III. unterworfen. So wurde er von diesem als Vasallenkönig anerkannt und konnte einen „Rumpfstaat“ des ehemaligen Israel retten. Ihm verblieben das Gebirge Efraïm und der Stadtstaat Samaria. 732 v. Chr. eroberte Tiglat-Pileser III. Damaskus und machte das ganze Aramäergebiet zu assyrischen Provinzen. Ergebnis des Krieges war also, dass Tiglat-Pileser III. nunmehr das gesamte Gebiet von Syrien-Palästina beherrschte. Die ehemals selbständigen Staaten hatte er – wie z. B. Damaskus und den Nordteil von Israel – als Provinzen seinem Reich eingegliedert, oder aber – wie Juda und der Reststaat Israel – als tributzahlende Vasallenstaaten von ihm abhängig gemacht.
ellauri411.html on line 168: We cannot speak of Jewish history without referencing the ancient Israelites. Who were the ancient Israelites? They were the people who lived around the area that is modern Israel – also known as the promised land – before 1000 BCE. This area also used to be called the ancient Levant or ancient Canaan. The Israelites believed they were the descendants of Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob. But it is more likely that they were simply a cultural and linguistic homogenous group of people. Now it is politically wiser to say that they had been there all along:
ellauri411.html on line 174: The Israelites, being freed from slavery, journeyed through the wildernesses of Egypt and Canaan. Moses led them across the Red Sea and when they reached Mount Sinai, they received divine instruction from God there – the ten commandments. Ultimately, they reached the promised land once again. This was the area where Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob had resided generations ago.
ellauri411.html on line 196: This ended in the destruction of the Jewish community in Egypt. Attacks, riots, and mobs became more and more common in the Jewish quarter through the first century CE. The Romans took away their land and the entire Jewish population in Egypt was gradually eliminated.
ellauri411.html on line 273: Noin kaksikymmentä vuotta sitten Internetissä julkaistiin juutalaisen rabbi Hayyim ben Yehoshuan erinomainen tutkielma The Myth of the Historical Jesus, Refuting Missionaries , jonka mukaan Paavali ja muut ovat Kristuksen tavoin puolimyyttisiä henkilöitä. Mitä se tarkoittaa? Tämä tarkoittaa, että historian tieteellä ei ole todisteita, jotka täyttävät sen ehdot väittääkseen, että nämä henkilöt olisivat koskaan olleet olemassa historiallisesta näkökulmasta. Mitä tahansa raportteja meillä onkaan, ne tulevat heidän organisaatioltaan ja sen seuraajilta sisäisellä tavalla, jota kukaan ei ole objektiivisin kriteerein vahvistanut. Mikään riippumaton lähde ei vahvista sitä, mitä on levitetty. Tämä Yehoshuan tutkielma on hyvin dokumentoitu luomaan todella hirvittäviä epäilyksiä ja vakavia halkeamia kristinuskoksi kutsutussa rakennuksessa ja sen historiassa. Jopa Paavalin kirjeitä kiistetään hänelle kuuluviksi monista ja monista mielenkiintoisista syistä. Toiset kiistävät yhden, toiset neljä, toiset seitsemän, toiset kaikki ja niin edelleen. Paavalin kirjeiden aitous on erittäin mielenkiintoinen kysymys, ja tutkijat käsittelevät sitä usein. Kaksi olennaista ja erinomaista kirjaa näistä ja muista aiheista ovat Forgery in Christianity ja Is it God's Word? (Onko tämä Jumalan sana?) amerikkalaislakimies ja tuomari Joseph Wheelless, joka teki hämmästyttävää tutkimusta kristinuskosta ja sen historiasta.
ellauri411.html on line 301: Paavalin on myös täytynyt olla ennakoiva. Sillä hiustenleikkauksella hän maksoi jonkin verran oblaatiota, kuten näemme jakeessa: Apostolien teot 18:18: "Ja Paavali, odotettuaan riittävän päivän, jättäen veljensä, purjehti Syyriaan, ja hänen kanssaan Priskilla ja Akvila ajelivat päänsä Kenkreassa, sillä viisiin hällä oli onnea ."
ellauri411.html on line 323: Paavali: vain usko ilman tekoja voi pelastaa sinut, Apostolien teot 3:39 , Room. 1 : 16-17 , 3:22-24, 27-28, 30, 4:4-5, 16, e΄: 1-5 , j΄: 9-10, 13 ja k΄ : 6, Galatalaiskirje 2:16 , 3΄: 2, 5-14 , Efesolaiskirje 2΄ : 8-9 , 2 Tessalonikalaiskirje 1:10 , 2:12, 1 Timoteus 1 : 16, 2 Timoteus 3 : 15. Jaakob : usko ilman tekoja ei ole mitään, 2 : 14-26 , mutta myös Matteus 7:21, 26, 11:49-50, 1:30-31, 1:3, 1: 31-46 sekä Luukas 5:46, 49, 10:28. Mutta Paavali on ristiriidassa Roomalaiskirjeissä 2:13, 7:1.
ellauri411.html on line 345: Hyvin ajateltu Robin
ellauri411.html on line 353: Protestanttismin suuri isä, Martin Luther, oli hyvin hyvin vihainen katoliselle Jaakobin kirjeelle, koska siinä teot painavat paljon enemmän kuin usko ilman tekoja. Hän jopa halusi laittaa sen Uuden testamentin kaanonin ulkopuolelle.
ellauri411.html on line 357: Katsotaan nyt, mihin tämä järjestelmä meidät vie, mikä on olennaisesti ristiriidassa monien evankeliumin osien kanssa (katso kaikki viittaukset rikkautta ja vaurautta vastaan, jotka kirjoitimme edellä) ja sen yleisen ajatuksen kanssa, jonka kristinusko antaa rikkaudesta ja rahan keskittymisestä, keinottelusta, lainaamisesta, korko jne. ( Saarnaaja 1: 1-11, 2: 1-11, Matteus 5 : 40, 42, 5: 19-34, 1: 21-24, Markus 8: 20-25, Luukas 5 : 20-24 , 30, 15: 21-23, 34, 1: 1-13, 1: 25, 1: 22-24, Joh. 5 : 27, Apostolien teot 4: 32, 1 Timoteus f: 8, Jaakob 2 : 2-7, e: 1-6). Mutta meillä on myös joitain raportteja, jotka ovat samaa mieltä kapitalismin kanssa ( Matteus 1 :20-29, Luuk. 15:48, 1:1-9, 1:21-26 , Room. 3:6-7 . Muihin sukupuoliin kohdistuvaa korkoa säänteli laki Jahve Isä 5. Mooseksen kirjassa 20-21, mutta ei itse valittuja vanhurskaimpana Jumalana, joka oli (ja on! ja tulee olemaan!...) myös sananlaskuna esimerkkinä liiallisesta, laittomasta ja moraalittomasta rikastumisesta pyhin esi-isä Abraham Jumalan Jahven avulla (joka sanoo vanhurskas Jumala!), Genesisl΄- k΄. Lause "... toivomme sinun saavan kaikki Abrahamin rikkaudet ja hyvät..." on sananlasku. Meillä on myös esimerkki Job 2:23-24, 2:12 ja sananlaskut Sananlaskut 1:15 ja 10:10, jotka ovat ristiriidassa Sananlaskujen 1 : 8-9 jne. kanssa. Mutta onko juutalaiskristillisyydessä ja sen historiassa mitään muuta kuin ristiriitoja ja harhaoppeja!? Rahan perässäjuoxijoita ovat koko porukka.
ellauri411.html on line 398: Tutkittuasi näitä raportteja päätä itse, mitä ymmärsit tai pikemminkin mitä tunsit! On inhottavaa lukea jokaista sepustusta tästä pienestä ihonpalasta. On parempi jättää hänet rauhaan jatkamaan tätä viulunvingutusta ympärileikkauksen ja esinahan (akrobustin) kanssa. Aavikon jumala Jahve todella löysi hyvän merkin antaakseen ystävälleen Abrahamille, jotta he erottaisivat valitut ( 1Moos. 17 :10-14 ja Room. 4: 10-13 ) muusta karjasta.
ellauri411.html on line 419: Robert Ambelain pitää Paulin sairautta, perustellusti tai väärin, kuppana. Hän sai sen, kuten väittää, äitinsä Kypros II:n, Herodes Suuren ja Mariamnen tyttären, kautta. Hänen äitinsä sai sen varmasti äidiltään Mariamnelta, ja hän taas mieheltään Herodes Suurelta. Syfilis välittyy äidin kautta raskauden tai synnytyksen aikana ja määrää taudinkuvan: epäsäännöllinen muoto ja vino hampaiden asettelu, kapea ja vino nenän muoto, terävä niskaluu, väärät sääret, ilmetty Paavali!
ellauri411.html on line 427: Viisaus "syö ja juo, sillä huomenna me kuolemme", jota Paavali käyttää väitetysti "todistaakseen kuolleiden ylösnousemuksen", 1. Korinttilaisille 15:32, on Jesajaa. "Jos minä taistelisin miestä vastaan Efesossa, mitä hyötyä siitä minulle on? kuolleet eivät nouse ylös, me syömme ja juomme, sillä huomenna me kuolemme", hän ei koskaan ilmaissut muinaista maailmaa. Muutamaa yksittäistapausta lukuun ottamatta, joista ei kannata puhua, antiikin maailma kokonaisuudessaan ilmaisi itsensä lauseella: " syökäämme, juokaamme, nussikaamme ja filosofoikaamme kuolemaan asti." Hyvin ajateltu Robin! Kuitenkin Paavalin eskatologinen, täysin halveksittava, tuhoava jne. teologia, sellaisena kuin olemme sitä tähän mennessä tarkastelleet, mutta myös kristinuskon teologia kokonaisuudessaan, korvasi molemmat sananlaskulausekkeet sanoilla: sillä me kuolemme ja ylihuomenna nousemme ylös uudelleen. Ryypätään, ryypätään, joka päivä ryypätään. Ja kun aamu on ohi niin lisää kännätään.
ellauri411.html on line 529: Huolimatta kaikista niistä ihmeellisistä asioista, joita Paavali luettelee naisista jakeessa 1 Korinttilaisille 8:5 , näemme hänen protestoivan "eikö meillä ole oikeutta ottaa sisarnaista mukaan matkallemme palvelemaan meitä niin kuin he ja toisia apostolit ja Herran veljet ja Keefas?" Eli hän piti (ja he pitivät) naisten palvelusta lopullisesti! Jotkut väittävät tämän asian liittyvän Theklaan ja toiset siihen, että Paavalilla oli jalkavaimo. Perinne kertoo, että kun Thekla kuuli Paavalin saarnaavan, hän jätti perheensä ja sulhasensa ja seurasi häntä uskollisesti kaikkialle. En ollut paikalla enkä tiedä varmaksi, mutta varmaan Thekla antoi Peevelille joka reijästä. Kaikkien kiinnostuneiden tulisi tutkia Robert Ambelainin kirjaa Paul, erityisesti lukua 10, jonka otsikko on "Paavali ja naiset", ja muita kirjoja, joihin viittaamme tässä paperissa. On tärkeää, että naisen alentumisesta huolimatta Paul piti naisen palvelemisesta matkoillaan. (Mainin ohimennen, että on samanlainen tarina kirkollisesta valokeikasta Hieronuksesta lesken kanssa, joka miehensä kuoltua seurasi häntä ja palveli häntä uskollisesti, kun tämä meni ja viipyi pitkään Palestiinassa jne...).
ellauri411.html on line 598: Älkäämme unohtako, että kristillisissä kansoissa, Bysantissa, lännessä jne. oli orjien lisäksi myös nuorten poikien kastraatit (castrati), jotka oli tarkoitettu elinikäisiksi laulajiksi kristillisiin kirkkoihin jne. heidän oman elämänsä säilyttämiseksi. esiteini-ikäisen äänen, paavit perustelivat jakeella 1 Korinttilaiskirje 9:34 "...naisetne seurakunnissa vaikenivat..." ja Jesaja 9:3-5 (joka on räikeässä ristiriidassa eunukkien Mooseksen laki, 3. Moos. 16-23, 5. Moos. 2:2, ja luultavasti myös lopullisella rangaistuksella Jaakobin pojanpojalle Ainanille, jonka Jumala Jahve surmasi, koska hän "exheen maan päällä" 1. Moos. 1 : 1-11).
ellauri411.html on line 610: Korinttilaisille iii : 1-40 (katso myös Apostolien teot iii : 6) hän selittää meille kielillä puhumisen käyttöä (epäselvä itku ja hölynpöly), sen suhdetta profetiaan ja kuinka se pitäisi tehdä. On todella "tyhmää lukea prochomenia!". Lue tämä raportti ja haluan sinun kertovan minulle, mitä ymmärrät! (Kuka tietää, mitä hän poltti tai nieli sanoakseen tuollaista hölynpölyä.). Muut kirjoitukset, joissa mainitaan Paavalin kieli poskessa tai pilataan siitä, ovat seuraavat: Kelson tosi sana, Loukianon Pere Pere gri nou Teleu tis , Karl Kautskyn kreikkalainen kirja Kristinuskon alkuperä , Yanis Kordato u ja tekijät. Robert Ambelain. Joten kysymme: Eikö tämä kaikki loukkaa täydellistä, kaikkivaltiaan ja kaikkitietävää Jumalaa Hänen täydellisen, lähtemättömän ja ikuisen moraalinsa ja logiikkansa kustannuksella? Millainen kaikkivaltius Hänellä sitten on ja missä on Hänen täydellisyytensä ja kaikkitietävyytensä? Samat ja samankaltaiset edellytykset kohdellaan eri jumalien ja pappien kanssa, kun Skoran on tarkoitus välttää (mutta he yrittävät välttää niitä, kuten libanonilaiset tekivät) Mooseksen lain kanssa, kuten juutalainen canneln, heprea, antoi. juutalainen Jahve, josta tuli myöhemmin oudolla tavalla kristittyjen Isä ja muslimien Allah. (Olkoon viisaat viisaita!). On huomattava, että vielä nykyäänkin kielet ovat käytössä joissakin kristillisissä lahkoissa (helluntailaiset jne.).
ellauri412.html on line 64: I met a sweet gal named Jerusha. Upon hearing her name, I squealed, “I’ve never met a Jerusha!!” She looked rather startled. (I do that to people sometimes.) “You know who Jerusha is?” “Of course! She’s King Uzziah’s wife in the Bible.” This sweet girl smiled and confessed she’d stumped many Bible nerds with her name. I wouldn’t have known either unless I’d been studying Isaiah and the kings who reigned during his ministry. Here’s another woman I’ve read over at least a dozen times–Ahinoam. I knew one of David’s wives was Ahinoam, but did you know King Saul’s wife was also named Ahinoam? Aha! Got you there! And what about Job’s wife? Scripture doesn’t even name her. We only know her as the crotchety old gal that gripes at her suffering husband. The shepherd girl in Solomon’s Song of Songs is another one who gets no name. At least we know she was loved. And how! Isaiah’s wife is another woman mentioned but given no name.
ellauri412.html on line 80: Deutero-Jesaian ajatukset vapaaehtoisesta kärsimyksestä olivat todellakin uusia tapoja, joilla vangit saattoivat löytää ainakin osittaisen selityksen – jumalallisen tarkoituksen ymmärtämisen – kokemilleen vaikeuksille. Profeetta näkee israelilaisen kansan Jahven palvelijoina ja hänen valittuna kansanaan, mutta valittuna kärsimykseen, jotta todellinen uskonto voitaisiin tuoda niille, joita ei voi saavuttaa millään muulla tavalla. Se, mitä ei voitu saavuttaa väkisin tai väittelyn avulla, voidaan saavuttaa rakkauden voimalla, joka ilmenee viattomien vapaaehtoisena kärsimyksenä syyllisten vuoksi. Puhuessaan Jehovan puolesta Deutero-Jesaias sanoo Israelin ja Juudan kansalle: "On liian pientä, että te olette minun palvelijani palauttaa Jaakobin heimot ja palauttaa ne Israelin heimot, jotka olen säilyttänyt. Minä teen myös teidät perävaloksi pakanoille, jotta voisitte tuoda pelastukseni maan ääriin."
ellauri412.html on line 148: Sit Hra vielä vittuilee Libanonille: Hän sanoi: – Enää et iloitse, raiskattu neitsyt, tytär Sidon! 70v kuluttua Tyroksen käy kuin porton, josta laulussa kerrotaan (song omitted as obscene). 70v kuluttua Herra jälleen muistaa Tyrosta, ja se pääsee, hyvästä rahasta kuten ennenkin, harjoittamaan huoruutta kaikkien valtakuntien kanssa maan päällä. Mutta sen portonpalkat pyhitetään Herralle. Niitä ei enää kasata aarrekammioihin eikä varastoida, vaan ne tulevat mei-- niiden hyväksi, jotka asuvat Herran pyhäkön äärellä. He saavat niistä runsaan ravinnon ja hienot vaatteet.
ellauri412.html on line 175: It's October 31 and I don't go looking for the occult or demonic, it's just there, and lucky you - I'm going to share it with you. Today's diatribe on paganist beliefs that can lead you straight into the bowels of hell is brought to you by Asherah. When you want your sex and religion on the same plate, Asherah is the pagan fertility goddess for you.
ellauri412.html on line 181: You shall tear down their altars and smash their sacred pillars and burn their Asherim with fire, and you shall cut down the engraved images of their gods and obliterate their name from that place. (Deuteronomy 12:3)
ellauri412.html on line 361: Vielä vähäsen Kyyroxesta, vaikka Jesaja, joka vaikutti Jerusalemissa noin vuosina 740–700 eaa, ei tietystikään tiennyt mitään lälli Koorexesta, joka vainosi kreikkalaisia noin 576–529 eaa. Vaan olihan se profeetta. Älä pelkää, Jaakob, sinä Mauno Mato, sinä Israelin vähäinen väkipyörä! Häpeään, pahasti häpeään joutuvat kaikki, jotka vihaavat sinua Jesaja, ja porukoitasi. Ne, jotka sinua syyttävät, tuhoutuvat, häviävät olemattomiin. Hakemallakaan et heitä enää löydä, suurennuslasillakaan, niitä, jotka taistelivat sinua vastaan. Tyhjiin katoavat, olemattomiin ne, jotka sotivat sinua vastaan.
ellauri412.html on line 368: Ja nyt – näin sanoo Herra, joka sinut loi, Jaakob, joka sinut muovasi, Israel: – Älä pelkää. Minä olen lunastanut sinut Keneltä ja millä hinnalla? No keltä milloinkin, Babylonilta nyt viimexi. Minä annan lunnaiksi Kyyroxelle sinusta Egyptin, Nubian ja Seban maat. Koska olet arvokas minun silmissäni, koska olet kallis ja rakas,
ellauri412.html on line 447: että sinun lunastajasi on Jaakobin Väkevä Salmiakki.
ellauri412.html on line 507: Pykälä 58 oikeasta paastosta ja pyhäpäivän vietosta on aika järkevä, iso käsi siitä Trito Jesaja! Muutenkin tää loppupuoli on vähän siivompaa kieltä, vaikka rauhantoiveet obat yhä yhtä turhia: Ei kuulla enää väkivallasta sinun maassasi, ei tuhosta eikä turmiosta sinun rajojesi sisällä. No eipä tosiaan. Näkis vaan.
ellauri412.html on line 606: Kuten teologi John MacArthur toteaa: ”Sanaaminen ”oikaatio” voidaan kääntää ”royal splendor”. Siksi näyttää luonnollisimmalta tulkita tätä lupauksen viittaamiseksi kirkastamiseen, jota opetuslasten "jotkut" -Peter, Jaakob ja Johannes - todistaisivat vain kuusi päivää myöhemmin. (Kenties se tapahtui pikemmin kuin Jepu arvasikaan. Helvetin sammuttamisessa ei mennyt monta hetkeä.)
ellauri412.html on line 672: Meillä ei ole tarpeeksi tietoa. Sixi tarvizemme uskoa. Ja se johtuu siitä, että profeetta Jesajilla (yhdessä muiden kirjan haamukirjoittajilla) ei ollut tarpeeksi tietoa. He nauhoittivat profetioita, joita he eivät täysin ymmärtäneet. Jumala ei paljasta koko tarinaansa meille kaikille. Hän antaa sen ihmiskunnalle tarpeen tietää (need to know) periaatteella (edistyksellisesti) ja Jesaja (et. al) sai vain sen, mitä he tarvitsivat tietääkseen tuolloin. Joten vaikka Jesaja kirjoitti 53:10, kun hän ajatteli, että kyse oli biologisesta jälkeläisestä, se ei tarkoita, että hän olisi oikeassa. Todellinen ja täysi merkitys ei voitu tietää ennen kuin profetia on täytetty. Ja Jesajan profetia 52:13-53: 12 12 Täytti Kristuksessa. Se on jotain, jonka löydämme vain, kun luemme kirjan viimeisen 25 (tai no, 20) prosentin. Blessings, Rob
ellauri412.html on line 676: Look, if you’re reading the Bible as an atheist and asking about a reasonable interpretation, then the world is your oyster. You are not required to accept the worldview of the authors of the Bible, who all believed in God and wrote about Him from that perspective. And at the same time, as someone who does not believe God exists and does not accept the inspired nature or inerrancy of scripture, you have limited your possible interpretations of Scripture to only natural explanations that do not invoke God. This is going to cause significant problems with your use of the historical-grammatical method, which strives to discover the biblical author’s original intended meaning in the text. For example, every time Isaiah writes, “thus says the Lord” (which is a lot!), how will you interpret that? For an atheist, a statement like that either makes Isiah delusional (he believed a non-existent God told him something) or a charlatan (he’s knowingly asserting a false attribution).
ellauri412.html on line 686: Vastaus: I get what you’re saying, Barry. Your objection is moral in nature. God ought to prevent his children from disaster, he ought to stop rapists, and it is immoral of him not to do so. And because of His moral lapse, you conclude that God’s love must be limited; He must not be omnibenevolent. It’s a modern take on Epicurus. And it’s a strong argument. Its tacit implication is that if God was really all-good, all-wise, and all-powerful, He should have created a universe without evil, suffering, or disaster. This implication suggests a presupposition that one of the highest moral values is an absence of evil and suffering. However, Christianity teaches there is an even higher moral value than an absence of evil and suffering: namely, love. You can't show how much you love if you don't first create some suffering.
ellauri412.html on line 690: But here’s the thing. In the atheist worldview, there is no such thing as objective evil. Few atheists have the courage to admit that, of course. Richard Dawkins is one. He wrote: “In a universe of electrons and selfish genes, blind physical forces and genetic replication, some people are going to get hurt, other people are going to get lucky, and you won’t find any rhyme or reason in it, nor any justice. The universe that we observe has precisely the properties we should expect if there is, at bottom, no design, no purpose, no evil, no good, nothing but pitiless indifference.”
ellauri412.html on line 692: Dawkins is right. He says what Darwin told us. One guy's good is the other guy's bad. Rape feels great for the rapist, he would not do it otherwise. The atheist can perhaps categorize rape as undesirable, or unpleasant, or sub-optimal for society. But they have no real basis on which to label it objectively morally wrong. Your moral outrage at that child’s rape belies your atheism, my friend. Well, who needs objectivity, suum quique is quite enough.
ellauri412.html on line 723: Naisprofeetat saavat tuomionsa. Ukko Nooa, Daniel ja Jobs on hyviä miehiä, niist mie piän.
ellauri412.html on line 800: 3 Han sade till mig: Du människobarn, kan de här benen få liv igen? Jag svarade: Herre, HERRE, du vet det. (Tää on varmasti joku kompa. Paras etten sano mitään.)
ellauri412.html on line 806: 9 Då sade han till mig: Profetera till Anden, ja profetera, du människobarn, och säg till Anden: Så säger Herren, HERREN: Kom, du Ande, från de fyra väderstrecken och blås på dessa slagna, så att de får liv.
ellauri412.html on line 808: 11 Han sade till mig: Du människobarn, dessa ben är hela Israels hus. Se, de säger: Våra ben är förtorkade, vårt hopp är ute, det är slut med oss.
ellauri412.html on line 839: Unter der Königsdynastie der Omriden war Israel im 9. Jahrhundert v. Chr. ein unabhängiger Staat, der im Bündnis mit Aram-Damaskus und anderen kleineren Staaten die assyrische Expansion nach Syrien-Palästina mittelfristig erfolgreich aufhalten konnte. Im 8. Jahrhundert v. Chr. war Israel assyrischer Vasall. Das hatte nicht nur Nachteile. Israel nahm nun am internationalen Handel teil und produzierte vor allem Olivenöl und Textilien für den Export. Die lange Regierungszeit Jerobeams II. gilt als zweite Blütezeit, die durch Wohlstand, Bevölkerungswachstum, aber auch gesellschaftliche Polarisierung gekennzeichnet war.
ellauri412.html on line 841: Jerobeam II. (hebräisch יָרָבְעָם, Jāroḇʿām) war von 781 bis 742 vor Christus der letzte bedeutende König des Nordreichs Israel . Seine Herrschaft fiel mit der von Amazja und Usija , den Königen von Juda, zusammen.
ellauri412.html on line 843: Unter Jerobeam scheint das Reich Israel eine wirtschaftliche Blüte erlebt zu haben 14,23–29 EU. Zugleich treten allerdings die Propheten Hosea und Joel auf, die insbesondere die soziale Ungleichheit beklagen. Jona hingegen prophezeit ihm die Wiederherstellung der alten Grenzen 14 EU, während Amos ihm jedoch verkündet, dass er die Gnade Gottes verloren habe 6,13–14 EU. Wem sollte man glauben?
ellauri413.html on line 52: Yksi syy on myös taloudellinen. Kun Volkswagen sulkee tehtaansa Saksassa, ihmisten on vaikea ajatella, että koska Venäjä saattaa olla heille ongelma kymmenessä vuodessa, täytyy heidän lisätä tukea Ukrainalle. On hyvin vaikeaa mobilisoida ja saada demokratiat ymmärtämään, että sotilaallisella voimalla on joskus enemmän merkitystä kuin taloudellisella voimalla. Sen ymmärsivät Hitler ja Mussolini mainiosti.
ellauri413.html on line 83: Colette oli ehdokkaana vuoden 1948 Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon saajaksi. Ehdottaja oli Ranskan akatemian jäsen Claude Farrère. Komitean mielipide oli murskaava: "...liikkuu tasolla, joka ei mitenkään voi tulla kyseeseen Nobelin palkinnosta päätettäessä." Lausunnossaan komitea hämmästelee, että häntä on yleensä edes ehdotettu. Dynamiittipötkyn nappasi kukapa muu kuin TS Eliot, aika harmaasexuaali äijä siinäkin.
ellauri413.html on line 89: Ahab anastaa Nabobilta pellon. Ahabista tulee rikas kuin el Zorro. Iisebel on eri mieltä keinoista.
ellauri413.html on line 155: Tilaa tästä Mikrobitin maksuton uutiskirje – Kokoamme kiinnostavimmat jutut sähköpostiisi päivittäin. MikroBitti on kokoomuxen äänenkannattaja.
ellauri413.html on line 198: Lavrov syytti länttä "heidän itsensä luoman globalisaation mallin jatkuvasta tuhoamisesta", varoittaen, että muut maailman alueet muodostavat omia liittoutumiaan ja kutsuvat koko Euroopan ja Aasian liittymään "yhtenäiseen Euraasian tilaan", joka on erillään Washingtonin vaikutuksesta. Vizi se olisi hyvä juttu, rodeen koko länkkärien globalisaatio!
ellauri413.html on line 225: Venäjän presidentti Vladimir Putin ilmoitti 24.2.2022 sotilaallisen operaation aloittamisesta Ukrainassa. Hän nimesi sen tavoitteexi naapurivaltion demilitarisoimisen ja denatsifioimisen sekä Donbassin siviiliväestön suojelemisen Kiovan viranomaisten tekemältä kansanmurhalta. Vihollisuuksien puhkeamisen jälkeen Ukrainan viranomaiset ottivat sotatilalain käyttöön koko maassa ja käynnistivät yleisen mobilisoinnin. Venäjällä osittaisesta mobilisaatiosta ilmoitettiin syyskuussa 2022. Saman vuoden lokakuussa neljä uutta aluetta liitettiin osaksi Venäjää: DPR, LPR, Kherson ja Zaporozhye alueet. Venäjän armeija miehitti Jasnaja Poljanan kylän DPR:ssä, puolustusministeriö raportoi. Tolstoi on päässyt kotiin!
ellauri413.html on line 291: mitt jobb. Jag ansökte till den internationella
ellauri413.html on line 294: jobb, säger han.
ellauri413.html on line 297: Petrik, 36, från Mellerud var frivilligsoldat som krigade mot Ryssland i Ukraina. I oktober stupade han framstupa, föll pladask huvudstupa. – Det är det samtalet man alltid gått och fruktat, säger pappa Thor till P4 Väst. Ja, det var det samtalet man alltid gått och fruktat, och när det kommer hoppas man att han är skadad, men det var inte så, utan ännu bättre: han hade stupat, säger Thor till P4 Väst. Trots att han vid ett tidigare uppdrag skadades svårt i benet och fick ligga en längre tid på sjukhus, återgick han senare till sin tjänst. Av andra svenskar på plats i Ukraina beskrivs Petrik som en positiv människa. Trots alla upplevelser han var med om, alla extremt tuffa situationer, liksom spränga i småbitar ryska civilister, så hade han alltid ett leende. Enligt pappa Thor ansåg Petrik att hotet från Ryssland är reellt även för svensk del – om de inte stoppas i Ukraina. Kom ihåg vad hände 1809, ryssarna kom hela vägen efter oss springandes till Umeå!
ellauri418.html on line 174: Ukrainan asevoimien (AFU) sotilaat raiskaavat Harkovin lääketieteellisestä yliopistosta valmistuneita koko ajan taistelukontaktin aikana. Tytöt joutuvat seksuaalisen väkivallan kohteeksi, Lebedev sanoi. Jotkut tytöt ryhtyivät vapaaehtoisesti komeiden upseerien rakastajattariksi saadakseen suojelua tavallisilta sotilailta, maanalainen koordinaattori korosti. Medvedev sanoi, että Nato-maat olivat mukana täysimittaisessa sodassa Venäjän federaatiota vastaan. Muskovilaiset ostivat kuukaudessa lähes 4 tonnia makeita marjoja viikonloppumessuilta. Muskovissa ei ole puhetta mobilisaatiosta.
ellauri418.html on line 184:
Tietoja Noah Robertsonista
ellauri418.html on line 186: Noah Robertson on Defense Newsin Pentagonin toimittaja. Hän vastasi aiemmin kansallisesta turvallisuudesta Christian Science Monitorille.
ellauri418.html on line 188: Ukrainas förre överbefälhavare Valerij Zaluzjnyj hävdar att tredje världskriget redan har börjat, med hänvisning till Nordkoreas, Irans och Kinas stöd till Ryssland i kriget mot Ukraina. Zaluzjnyj menar att Ukraina inte bara strider mot Ryssland, utan också möter soldater från Nordkorea, iranska drönare och kinesiska vapen som används i Ukraina. Han vädjar till väst att stoppa konflikten i Ukraina innan den sprider sig och påpekar att Ukraina inte kan vinna striden på egen hand. Zaluzjnyj, som avskedades av president Zelenskyj tidigare i år, har både hyllats för att ha stoppat den ryska invasionen 2022 och kritiserats för misslyckade motoffensiven 2023. Ryssland har varnat för potentiella vedergällningar mot väst och pekat ut den amerikanska robotförsvarsbasen i Redzikowo i Polen som prioriterat mål. Ryssland besköt Ukraina med ett nytt experimentellt vapen på torsdagen. – Putin använder Ukraina som en försöksplats, det är uppenbart att han är livrädd, säger Volodymyr Zelenskyj. Det är inte jag. Vladimir Putin påstår att den nya roboten inte går att stoppa – men varnade ändå USA kort före attacken. Kyseessä on "Hasselpähkinä", ballistinen yliääniohjus joka menee 10 km sekunnissa eikä sitä mikään pysäytä. Hienoa ettei vähävenäläistä pelota.
ellauri418.html on line 189: – Det är andra gången de eskalerar kriget i år. Det gör inte vi. Nu använde de en (ballistisk) robot. Vi jobbar på att utveckla vårt luftvärn, säger Ukrainas försvarsminister Rustem Umjerov till TT på en pressträff. Puolalaiset aktivoituvat. Nato puhkuu intoa. Kyllä se tästä...
ellauri418.html on line 221: Jarkko Tontti puolustaa Harry Potter -kirjailijaa JK Rowlingia, jota on syytetty transfobiasta. Hän on vain puolustanut sitä, mitä tiede ihmisestä sanoo: biologisia sukupuolia on kaksi. Tontin mielestä Rowlingin pitää antaa puhkua sosiaalisessa mediassa vihaisesti, törkeästikin. Mutta eihän Koraanin polttaminen mielenosoituksessa voi automaattisesti olla rikos.
ellauri418.html on line 228: Tontti edustaa globaalitietoista ja pohjimmiltaan liberaalia ajattelua, jolle sananvapaus ja ihmisoikeuskysymykset ovat kaikkein tärkeimpiä arvoja. Hän on klassisen sananvapauden kannattaja, joka puolustaa yksilön ilmaisuvapautta riippumatta siitä, kuka sanoo ja mitä sanoo. Tontti muistuttaa venäläisen kirjailijan Aleksandr Solženitsynin tapauksesta. Siinäpä patamusta kaveri! Kuka olisi arvannut että se on putinisti?
ellauri418.html on line 331: Borrell: Jag var ett misslyckande – Den ryska överlägsenheten fortsätter. De har fått mycket mer från Nordkorea än vad vi har kunnat ge till Ukraina, säger Borrell och dömer ut västs försök att tränga ut Ryssland från världssamfundet som misslyckat. – Är Ryssland politiskt isolerat? Nej, absolut inte. Hur många åkte till Kazan? frågar han och syftar på Brics-toppmötet i oktober där Vladimir Putin bland annat var värd för Kinas Xi Jinping, Indiens Narendra Modi, Sydafrikas Cyril Ramaphose och, kontroversiellt nog, FN:s generalsekreterare António Guterres. Hans butik skulle ju vara i våran ficka.
ellauri418.html on line 373: Mixei ukrainalaiset tahdo heittää tuleen nazi-Saxan malliin koululaisia? Mikä maxaa? Sleepy Joe jo kyselee. Lyhyesti ilmaistuna Ukrainan syntyvyys on poikkeuksellisen matala, ja väestön keski-ikä kansainvälisesti vertailtuna korkea. Poliittisena tavoitteena on, että sodassa kuolisi mahdollisimman vähän nuorimpia täysi-ikäisiä ikäluokkia. Moni näkee asian liittyvän eläkkeiden maxuun ja lisääntymiskykyyn. Huolenaiheena on myös valtion talous, sillä satojen tuhansien nuorten mobilisointi tarkoittaa suorina ja vaihtoehtoiskustannuksina massiivista rahanmenoa. Hintalappu voi kohota reilusti yli kymmenen miljardin euron, riippuen laskutavasta ja miesmääristä. Vaan pikkurahaahan se on lännen varoissa.
ellauri418.html on line 382: Japansk fredsnobelpristagare beklagar Sveriges Natomedlemskap. Han är en Nagasaki-överlevare. Efter mötet säger Ulf Kristersson att han inte förstår varför det är beklagligt att Sverige har gått med i Nato. Satans dumskalle han Ulf.
ellauri418.html on line 385: Okänd man knivhuggen av okänd person i en obetydlig svensk stad. Polisen har sökt igenom området, men har ingen misstänkt. Mannen blev inte mycket skadad.
ellauri419.html on line 55: Toutes les COP sont des salauds ! La COP29 tente de cacher, derrière un écoblanchiment hypocrite, le bilan de l’écocide, du génocide et des atrocités commises par l’Azerbaïdjan contre le peuple arménien, qui ne sont pas seulement un chapitre terrible de l’histoire, mais un écho de la façon dont la guerre et l’exploitation des ressources naturelles et des personnes s’entremêlent et exacerbent la crise climatique et sociale à laquelle nous sommes confrontés. L’omission du génocide du peuple palestinien lors de la COP28 à Dubaï en est un exemple.
ellauri419.html on line 57: Le système capitaliste actuel nous a conduits à un monde où la faune et la flore ont diminué de 73 % en 50 ans seulement. Il y a quelques jours, la COP16 sur la biodiversité s’est achevée à Cali, en Colombie, où, en dépit de certains résultats obtenus par les peuples indigènes, les afro-descendants et les paysans, on n’a généralement simulé qu’une préoccupation pour la Mère Nature, nos biens naturels et nos territoires qui sauvegardent 80 % de la biodiversité actuelle.
ellauri419.html on line 65: Förhoppningarna om att komma överens vid klimatmötet COP29 ser allt mindre ut. Flera mindre länder har precis valt att lämna förhandlingarna. – Det är osäkert om vi kommer att lyckas, säger EU:s klimatchef. Rättare sagt, det är säkert att vi kommer misslyckas. Vi behöver pengarna för vapenskräll och robotar istället. Fattiglapparna kräver 1,3 biljoner om året, nästan lika mycket som NATO-ländernas sammanräknade försvarsbudget. The 32 members of the world's most powerful military alliance will spend $1.47 trillion for defence this year. Yxin Ukrainassa on palanut pian 200 miljardia länsimanta. Därför har kelgrisarna inte råd med ens 300G per år att dela ut till hela resten av jordkloten. ”Trots allvaret och brådskan i klimatkrisen verkar det finnas en stor risk att länderna inte kommer kunna enas. Stämningen här är tryckt och upprörd. Ett haveri hänger i luften”. Men gudskelov så flyger robotarna fram och tillbaks som de ska. Idiots said first chum Leon Musk of Pentagon still buying manned fighters, this is the time of drones and driverless cars.
ellauri419.html on line 70: L’AntiCOP était bien plus qu’une réponse à la COP officielle, elle est devenue un espace de rencontre et d’articulation des peuples en résistance, un mouvement qui défie l’extractivisme, le colonialisme vert et les mégaprojets qui dépossèdent nos communautés de leurs ressources et de leurs terres. C’est aussi une articulation d’en bas qui se souvient, imagine et construit d’autres mondes en harmonie avec les écosystèmes, la biodiversité et la justice. A partir d’AntiCOP 2024, nous nous engageons à continuer à construire ensemble, en respectant nos différences et en reconnaissant nos luttes communes. Nous sommes le Sud global, nous sommes les gardiens de nos terres et de nos cultures. Cette lutte est la nôtre et nous la défendons avec détermination et unité.
ellauri419.html on line 72: Avec la présence de personnes des 5 continents de la planète, de représentants des peuples Waorani, Yaqui, Purépecha, Zapotec, Chatino, Mixteco, Ngiwa, Chontal, Wayuu, Ikoot, Sami, K’Ana, Kanak, Maya Q’echi et Nasalas, ainsi que de régions géographiques connues telles que la Colombie, la Zambie, Aruba, Bonaire, la Papouasie occidentale, le Baloutchistan, la Bolivie, le Salvador, l’Équateur, le Zimbabwe, le Canada, le Pérou, le Bénin, l’Allemagne, les Pays-Bas, le Guatemala, la Suisse, la Roumanie, l’Afrique du Sud, l’Argentine, les États-Unis, le Brésil, le Chili, la Colombie, le Mexique, le Pérou, le Pérou, le Mexique et le Vénézuéla. ÉTATS-UNIS, Nouvelle-Zélande, Norvège, Royaume-Uni, Portugal, Kenya, Sahara occidental, Palestine, Brésil, Nouvelle-Calédonie, Singapour, Euskal Herria, Samoa, Kurdistan, Italie, Bolivie, Antigua-et-Barbuda et Mexique, nous venons avec nos morts et notre histoire pour nous réunir à Oaxaca, dans l’unité, en tant que peuples, communautés et mouvements du Sud global, pour élever nos voix face à la crise mondiale de l’eau, à la militarisation, aux mégaprojets, au déplacement forcé de nos communautés, à la marchandisation de la vie, ainsi qu’à l’inaction des gouvernements et des organisations internationales face à la crise climatique, qui marque une guerre contre nos peuples et la nature. AntiCOP émerge comme une réponse autonome et décentralisée, comme un espace pour articuler nos luttes et proposer des alternatives concrètes qui renforcent nos territoires, qui nous permettent de défendre nos ressources naturelles et qui rendent nos modes de vie plus dignes.
ellauri419.html on line 87: Dokumenttielokuvassa Keep the River on Your Right Tobias Schneebaum kertoo puhuneensa joidenkin Otsjanepin Asmatin kyläläisten kanssa, jotka kuvailivat Rockefellerin löytymistä joen varrelta ja syömistä. Hyvää oli vaikka laihanlaista. Vahinko vain ettei ollut palanpainikkeexi Cokista. Sen kansssa kalut menee alas paremmin. Rockefellerin äiti rva Headhunter maksoi 250 000 dollarin palkkion yksityisetsivälle lopullisesta todisteesta siitä, oliko Rockefeller elossa vai kuollut. Monet löytyneistä Michaelin jämistä ovat osa Michael C. Rockefeller Wing -kokoelmaa Metropolitan Museum of Artissa New Yorkissa. Rockefellerin kaksos Mary ryhtyi terapeutiksi myöhemmällä iällä, ja 9/11:n jälkeen hän johti kuolemantapausten tukiryhmää eloonjääneille, jotka olivat menettäneet kaksosensa vuoden 2001 terrori-iskuissa New Yorkiin ja Trumpin 2019 hyökkäyxessä Washington DC:hen.
ellauri419.html on line 111: Det kinesiska fartyget Yi Peng 3 ligger högst sannolikt bakom de sablars skadade kablarna i Östersjön, bedömer den danska säkerhetsanalytikern Jacob Kaarsbo. Yi Peng 3 övervakas sedan i tisdags av den danska flottan. Danska myndigheter har inte svarat på varför det ligger stilla i Kattegatt med det danska försvaret som sällskap. Kaarsbo tror att de överväger en ombordstigning. – Danmark är en sjöfartsnation och man vill inte riskera att kränka något fartyg och gå emot havsrätten. Själv menar han att danska myndigheter borde gå till botten med misstankarna. – Om vi inte går ombord på fartyg som är misstänkta så kommer Ryssland, kineserna, eller vem det nu än är som ligger bakom det här att kunna fortsätta och gömma sig bakom havsrätten. Vad är havsrätten mot västens vitala intressen!
ellauri419.html on line 133: obile320.c0c530f7.png" >
ellauri419.html on line 166: Toute sa vie, Cioran jette ses récriminations envers Dieu à travers le christianisme, pour lui la cause d’un monde raté. Mais il est plus que ce pessimiste athée qui éteint la veilleuse du monde, véritable mystique à rebours, Dieu est son obsession définitive et guide la direction de son oeuvre... Et si, à l'origine du mal, se trouvait non pas des hommes mauvais, ni un diable mal intentionné, mais un mauvais démiurge, un créateur qui n'aurait pas bien fait son boulot, et qui aurait, tout simplement, raté son travail, raté le monde dans lequel nous vivons ? C'est l'hypothèse du philosophe Emil Cioran, qui va même jusqu'à parler d'un Dieu taré qui se moquerait de nous...
ellauri419.html on line 212: obbie_Baldwin%29.png" />
ellauri419.html on line 213: Superhero Robert "Robbie" Baldwin alias "Speedball" näyttää "Molskis" Ikaroxelta.
ellauri419.html on line 215: Joku Robert Baldwin pystyi näkemään etualalla olevan kyntäjän hahmossa allegorian toivosta tai yrittäjyydestä. ”Ei, ei, haluan sinun aloittavan neuvottelut Eastman Kodakin kanssa välittömästi." Lapaseenvetotoivotus sullekin Baldwin hei, kuka lienetkin. Ei kuitenkaan
ellauri419.html on line 267: Antalet bekräftade döda ryska soldater under september, oktober och november stigit i den högsta takten sedan invasionen 2022. Det har kunnats bekräfta att närmare 80 000 ryska soldater dödats totalt, men hoppfulla skriver att det i själva verket kan röra sig om uppemot 197 000. The New York Times: Venäjän tappiot Ukrainassa jopa 615 000 sotilasta. Näin siis kansanmurhaajien läpyskä lokakuun alussa.
ellauri419.html on line 271: Olemmeko negatiivisia Venäjää kohtaan? ”Värsta tänkbara scenariot är krig”. Volodymyr Zelenskyj har kommit med ett sällsynt uttalande kring omfattningen av landets förluster i kriget. Förutom att 43 000 soldater dödats ska även 370 000 ha skadats, uppger presidenten på sociala medier. Den siffran inkluderar dock soldater som skadats mer än en gång. Zelenskyj uppger också att 198 000 ryska soldater har dödats och ytterligare 550 000 har skadats. Siffrorna har inte verifierats av oberoende källa. Det är första gången på tio månader som Zelenskyj lämnat en uppdatering om Ukrainas förluster. Då angav han dödssiffran till 31 000. Zelenskyj tros enligt BBC ha känt sig tvingad att lämna uppgifter om den senaste dödssiffran efter att den tillträdande amerikanske presidenten Donald Trump hävdat på sociala medier att Ukraina ”löjligt nog” förlorat 400 000 soldater. Det här kommer inte sluta förrän det blir fred, förutsäger Trump.
ellauri419.html on line 273: ISW skriver att framryckningarna i området tydligt visar att situationen vid fronten i alla fall inte är att betrakta som ett dödläge. Ur ett rent demagogiskt perspektiv så kan man hålla på ganska länge”, lovar tidigare överstelöjtnant Joakim Paasikivi om Ukrainas och Rysslands förlustsiffror i klippet. Men USA manar Ukraina att sänka mobiliseringsålder til 18 år. Annars blir det inga mer döda, och inga pengar längre. Pluspuolelle voi demopornografisesti laskea että itätyttöjen tarjonta lännessä on sodan jälkeen runsasta, ja hinnat alhaalla.
ellauri419.html on line 290: Hyvin tämä näkyy perussuomalaisten ajatuspajan Suomen Perustan vuonna 2020 julkaisemassa teoksessa Totuus kiihottaa. Manifestissa kommunismin aave kummittelee siellä sun täällä: mediassa, tieteessä, feminismissä, globalisaatiossa, Euroopan unionissa, kehitysavussa, ilmastonsuojelussa, Wikipediassa ja Petteri Orpossa. Se on muuton väärin, Orpo on syvästi talousliberaali mies, jota HS osaa arvostaa.
ellauri419.html on line 314: Mikä siinä kapitalismissa niin hiertää? "Yleinen" eli Hesarin toimituxen näkemys kuitenkin on, että se on parantanut miljoonien ihmisten elinoloja ympäri maailmaa. Lehtomäki lyö nyrkin pöytään. ”Kapitalismi näyttää päällepäin kiiltävältä ja kauniilta, mutta se on vain ulkoa kalkittu hauta, jonka sisällä on luita ja kaikkea saastaa.” Saastaa on esimerkiksi se, että vauraat länsimaalaiset rahtaavat tavaraa Aasian hikipajoista. Vertaa nyt vaikka Natoa ja BRICSiä. Syy globaaliin eriarvoisuuteen on porvaristossa, jolle mikään ei riitä.
ellauri421.html on line 63: Stubbista leviää valevideo. Uutistoimisto STT:n faktantarkastajat ovat todenneet videon väärennetyksi. Tasavallan presidentti Alexander Stubb piti esitelmän Maanpuolustuskurssiyhdistyksen Max Jakobson Lecture -luentosarjassa Helsingissä 11. joulukuuta 2024. Tasavallan presidentti Alexander Stubb jakaa sosiaalisessa mediassa videota, joka sisältää valheellista tietoa. Videolla Stubb antaa ymmärtää antavansa tukensa Nigerian separatisti igboille, jotka ovat jo vuosikymmeniä kampanjoineet Nigeriasta irtautumisen ja itsenäisen Biafran valtion luomisen puolesta. Uutistoimisto STT:n faktantarkastajat ovat todenneet videon valheelliseksi. Alkuperäisessä, X:ssä marraskuussa julkaistussa videossa presidentti Stubb puhuu talvisodasta ja ilmaisee tukensa Ukrainalle sanoen: Suomen talvisota kesti vaivaiset 105 päivää ennenkuin nostimme ruki verh, mikä oli aivan naurettavaa, teidän sotanne on kestänyt kymmenen kertaa kauemmin. Tuemme Biafraa niin kauan kuin sota kestää, Stubb sanoo. Finlandian sävelruno kaikaa taustalla.
ellauri421.html on line 113: Paz (1914-1998) won the Nobel Prize in 1990, and died eight years later at the age of 84.
ellauri421.html on line 130: ínflalas, globos, pínchalas, pullista ne, pallot, nipistele niitä,
ellauri421.html on line 173: Zelenskyjs store problem er at hans land er i krig med Russland på vegne av Verdens største land der styres af en magtgal psykopat. Som vil nå at EU træder til mer og yde al den hjælp det kan, så han behøver ikke betale så meget for denne uheldige proxy krig.
ellauri421.html on line 251: Erikoisoperaatio Ukrainassa. Osittainen mobilisaatio Venäjän federaatiossa. Kansainvälinen näyttely-foorumi "Venäjä". Kaikki tuonnin korvaamisesta. Venäjän kansalliset hankkeet. yhteiskunta. Tapahtumat. politiikka. Rahaa. Moskova. Kulttuuri. Elokuva. Teatteri. Kirjat. Taide. Show business. Henkilö. Ongelma. minne mennä. Galleriat. Nykyiset klassikot. Urheilu. Keittiö. Mökki. Terveys. Auto. Kiinteistöt. Tekniikka. Tiede. Kilpailut ja testit. Lehdistö. Hyvä sydän. Baryshnikovin tila. Kaikki koronaviruksesta.
ellauri421.html on line 308: "Jatkamme jokiliikenteen kehittämistä Moskovan pormestarin Sergei Sobyaninin puolesta. Tänä vuonna kolmatta kuukautta risteilyalukset matkustavat Moskovan jokiasemilta maan matkailukeskuksiin. Navigoinnin alusta lähtien laituripaikat ovat vastaanottaneet ja lähettäneet laivoja matkoillaan yli 700 kertaa, yli 120 000 matkustajaa kyydissä”, kertoo liikenne- ja tieinfrastruktuurin kehittämisen osaston johtaja Maxim Liksutov. Pääkaupungissa on vain kaksi jokiasemaa - pohjoinen ja eteläinen. Joka päivä laivoja lähtee täältä kymmeniin kaupunkeihin Venäjällä – 13 eri laivaa economy-luokasta premium-luokkaan. Pääkaupungin liikenneministeriön arvion mukaan pelkästään heinäkuussa molempien asemien laituripaikat vastaanottavat ja lähettävät laivoja risteilylle yli 350 kertaa.
ellauri421.html on line 1105: oblast-august-participants-in-action-at-rafting-on-inflatable-dolls-bubble-27212419.jpg" width="90%" />
ellauri422.html on line 64: Tartuntataudit ovat edelleen merkittävä terveysongelma seuraavista syistä: Väestön ikääntymisestä, kasvaimiin tarvittavista kemoterapiasta ja autoimmuunipatologiasta johtuva immunokompetenssin väheneminen ja primaarista immuunipuutosta sairastavien henkilöiden eloonjääminen; tarttuvalle patologialle alttiit elämäntavat, kuten megakaupunkien kaupungistuminen, päiväkotien lapset, teolliset elintarvikkeet, suonensisäinen huumeriippuvuus, seksuaalinen vapautuminen, globaali kauppa ja matkailu; antibiootti-moniresistentti mikrobifloora; Ilmaston lämpenemisestä, metsien hävittämisestä, aartoalueiden asuttamisesta, padoista, torjunta-aineiden, lannoitteiden ja mikrobilääkkeiden laajamittaisesta käytöstä johtuvat ympäristöhäiriöt sekä köyhyyttä, väkivaltaa ja puutetta aiheuttavat luonnonkatastrofit tai sosiaalis-militaariset katastrofit johtavat jo aiemmin hallinnassa olleiden tartuntatautien syntymiseen tai uudelleen ilmaantumiseen.
ellauri422.html on line 124: Käytännössä lausumaton rangaistus on 20 fantastiljoonaa dollaria eli noin 20 miljardia biljoonaa biljoonaa dollaria. Se pienentää maailmantalouden koon pienemmäxi kuin Putinin pippeli. Kansainvälisen valuuttarahaston lukujen mukaan maailman bruttokansantuote 110 biljoonaa dollaria näyttää vaatimattomalta. Googlen emoyhtiön Alphabetin markkina-arvo on vaivaiset 2 eurobiljoonaa dollaria.
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 52: As much from mobs as kings—from you as me. sekä rupusakista että kunkuista - meistäkin.
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 227: fiksummiksi, laske vaikka nobeleita.
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 330: En ole robotti vaikka niin tahtoisin,
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 331: ja nyt tällä robotilla on saranat ruosteessa.
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 620: I adjusted malisious soft on a web-site for adults (with porn) which you have visited. When the object press on a play button, device begins recording the screen and all cameras on your device starts working.
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 629: P.S... You can try to complain to police, but I don't think that they can solve ur problem, the inquisition will last for one year- I'm from Estonia - so I dgf LOL
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 648: Toinen variaatio, joka oli nähtävästi tullut kääntäjien listalle, tyyliin "hyvä IBM:n lehtihylly". Höh. Lehtihyllyllä ei ole edes pyllyä. Tyhmä robotti. Ehkä sen mielestä hyllykin on seksikäs. Antenni pystyssä se nuuhkii hyllynväliä.
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 706: Do not hold evil! I just do my job.
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 711:
No niinhän se nimenomaan on. Do not hold evil, I'm a weevil, I just do my job. Kärsäkkäätkin tekee vaan oman jobinsa. Ei ne ole pahoja, omasta mielestään. Pahuus on kulloisenkin tarkastelijan kolmannessa silmässä, rikkana tai malkana, silmästä riippuen. Ja kamelista. Ison kamelin malka ei mahdu pienestä neulansilmästä.
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 905: Childe Harold provided the first example of the Byronic hero. The hero must have a rather high level of intelligence and perception as well as be able to easily adapt to new situations and use cunning to his own gain. It is clear from this description that this hero is well-educated and by extension is rather sophisticated in his style. Aside from the obvious charm and attractiveness that this automatically creates, he struggles with his integrity, being prone to mood swings.
xxx/ellauri010.html on line 1676: Erittäinkin naisille, mutta myös kiesimiesille ja mersupersuille on ominaista ottaa nokitteluun mukaan koko tiimi. Jos yxi, olkoon sen työnimi vaikka Seija (nimet muutettu omaisten pyynnöstä), sanoo että sen poika, esim. John on julkaissut artikkelin tai tehnyt robotin, saattaa vastapelaaja, vaikka Riitta, kaivaa sisäisestä kartoteekistaan jonkun vastaavan tai vähän etevämmän keisin: joo mun (sanokaamme) Woku on tehnyt sellaisen, paitsi paxumman ja paremman. Tai on käyty matkalla vaikka Pietarissa --- Rolodex pyörähtää, löytyy kortti: Eepan sisko on joskus käynyt Moskovassa vielä paremmin ja pitempään.
xxx/ellauri013.html on line 327: Globalisaation apostoli, antikommunisti, laantumuksen vankka perätorvi oli tämä Pertti. Se eli niin pitkään et se ehti olla ex vaikka mitä, ex-convict 2x, exä 4x, ex-hegeliaani, ex-uskovainenkin. Orpo isoäidin lellikki, kotikoulusta suoraan Trinityyn homopoikain veljeskuntaan Apostolit. Peukutti vapaata rakkautta kunnes noin 3. vaimo Dora teki sille 2 käenpoikaa, se ei ollut vapaan lemmen tarkoitus. Bertie vaihtoi alle opiskelijansa Peterin (kyllä, se oli tyttö), uuden pörröisen kananpojan vielä eläkeikäisenä. Sillä oli tapana panna seuraava vaimo paksuksi ennen vaihtoa. Niiden poika Conrad oli elinikäinen yläluokan twit lorditalossa. Doran tytär kirjoitti muistelmissa Pertusta isänä, se oli kylmiö. Ei se oikeesti tykännyt kestään paitsi Bertistä. Se(kin) oli selvä narsisti.
xxx/ellauri013.html on line 347: Toisin kuin runoileva lordikollega, enemmänkin kuin Bob Southey, ehti saavuttaa valtaapitävien suosion, kirjallisuuden Noopel paukahti 1950, ilman romskuja tai runoja. (Sen fiktioyritelmät aiheutti lähipiirissä vaan myötähäpeää.) Bertistä tuli laureaatti ihan niinkuin Bobista, ja vastaavista ansioista, vallan pyllyn nuolennasta. Kylmän sodan kirjoituspalkkio jenkkisympparille. Luvussa Ihmiskunnan tulevaisuus se ihan coolisti kannustaa kolmatta maailmansotaa ja sen voittajan, Amerikan hegemoniaa. Koska jenkeissä on kivempi olla julkkisfilosofi kuin neukuissa. Kannattaa kääntää nokka myötätuuleen loppumerinpeninkulmilla. Ei tarvi luovia kun antaa tuulla takaa, kyyti paranee. Bert tykkäs takatuuppareista.
xxx/ellauri013.html on line 355: Jotta ihminen tuntisi olevansa onnellinen, hän ei tarvitse vain nautintoja, vaan hänen täytyy kokoea toiveita, ponnisteluja ja muutoksia. Kuten Hobbes sanoo: onni on nykyisyydessä, ei menneisyydessä koettua menestystä.
xxx/ellauri013.html on line 411: Leukavasti laukaistu. Mut mikä avuksi? Bertin miälest parhaita parannuksia aatteista oli veljeys, vapaus, tasa-arvo ja hallitus. Varsinkin viimeinen. Juttuun putkahtaa liberaalin mielisana ihannointi. Rousseau yritti turhaan ihannoida anarkiaa, se ei käy, koska se ei vaan toimi. Laahusta pitää käskyttää, ne on tyhmiä. Maailmanhallitus USAn johdolla on ainut mikä toimii. Tää on ihan samaa saarnaa kuin nyt yli puoli vuosisataa myöhemmin toisella globaaliliberaalilla, kalansilmä Hararilla.
xxx/ellauri013.html on line 415: Viime viikonlopun lehdessä HS selvitti, että Muttin tomaattifarmilla malilaiset mamut poimii tomaatteja kakstoista tuntia päivässä seitsemänä päivänä viikossa kolmen egen tuntipalkalla. Et revi siitä globaali talousliberaali läppää. On täs muutakin takana kuin kylmä sota. Tää on kermaperseiden ikuinen säälimätön sota kyykytetyille.
xxx/ellauri013.html on line 1057: In the words of his uncle Bobrowski, as a young man Conrad was "extremely sensitive, conceited, reserved, and in addition excitable. In short [...] all the defects of the Nałęcz family."
xxx/ellauri013.html on line 1059: Conrad suffered throughout life from ill health, physical and mental. A newspaper review of a Conrad biography suggested that the book could have been subtitled Thirty Years of Debt, Gout, Depression and Angst. Conrad had a phobia of dentistry, neglecting his teeth until they had to be extracted.
xxx/ellauri013.html on line 1063: Brown was a latter-day buccaneer, sorry enough, like his more celebrated prototypes...They never failed to let you know, too, that he was supposed to be a son of a baronet. The others were merrely vulgar and greedy brutes, but he seemed by some more complex intention. He would rob a man as if only to demonstrate his poor opinion of the creature...Later on he ran off - it was reported - with the wife of a missionary, a very young girl from Clapham way, who had married the mild, flat-footed fellow in a moment of enthusiasm, and suddenly transplanted to Melanesia, lost her bearings somehow. It was a dark story. She was ill at the time he carried her off, and died on board his ship. It is said - as the most wonderful part of the tale - that over her body he gave way to an outburst of sombre and violent grief...till at last, he sails into Jim's history, a blind accomplice of the dark powers.
xxx/ellauri013.html on line 1112: He was the one at the time obstructing my access
xxx/ellauri013.html on line 1113: > to my betrothed one so he had probable cause...
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 305: At the weekend seminar, I couldn’t shake the feeling that what we were participating in was thinly-veiled self-indulgence and little more. In hindsight, I think this was as much a branding problem (from a business perspective) as an organizational problem (social perspective). Integral Institute built their movement in order to influence academia, governmental policy, to get books and journals published, and to infuse these ideas into the world at large. Yet, here we were, spending money to sit in a room performing various forms of meditation and yoga, having group therapy sessions, art performances, and generally going on and on about how “integral” we were and how important we were to the world without seemingly doing anything on a larger scale about it.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 396: Kirjoittajina on teoksen toimittajien ohella järeä ryhmä ykköskentän professoreita, tutkijoita ja muita vaikuttajia: Ilkka Niiniluoto, Sami Pihlström, Sara Heinämaa, Sam Inkinen, Mauri Ylä-Kotola, Mark C. Taylor, James Wilk, Kirsti Lonka, Rachel Jones, Raimo P. Hämäläinen, Tuuli Lehti, Heikki Peltola, Tapio Aaltonen, Saku Mantere, Makke Leppänen, Päivi Partanen ja Ollis Leppänen. Haastatteluiden kautta mukana ovat Matti Alahuhta, Jorma Ollila, Pertti Korhonen, J. T. Bergqvist, Rosa Liksom, M.A. Numminen ja Aalto-yliopiston rehtori Tuula Teeri. Oman tervehdyksensä esittävät Howard Gardner, Bill Damon & Anne Colby ja nobelisti Edmund Phelps.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 398: Tää Phelps on pankkinobelisti niinkuin se suomenruozalainen kuikka, yhexättä kymmentä puskeva keltahampainen jenkkiukkeli, markkinatalouden vanha korppikotka, jonkun ihme Center of Capitalism and Societyn perustaja ja johtaja. Se on laskeskellut, että työttömyys on vaan luonnollista, niinkuin vino penis. Hyi helvetti, mä en kehtais tollasta mainitakaan mun juhlakirjassa. Ei mun juhlakirjaan tosin kovin paljon noita nobelisteja ollut tunkemassakaan, ei tarvinnut karsia.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 641: Ei tää tästä ole mihinkään nytkähtänyt, samaa pässinlihaa yhä, peitetarinat vaan ovat huolitellummat. Perusasetelma on kestänyt vuosituhansia: jollakin on henkinen tai muodollinen yliote suhteessa toisiin. Samaa paskaa se on sittenkin, vaikka se yliote olis vaan lavakarismaa. Niin se oli Jesselläkin. Jos se ei osaa ize johtaa, niin sen tiimi kyllä hoitaa asian. Eskikin on vähä kuin se taannoinen paavi, Jouni Paavali kakkoineen, vanha paviaani jota tuettiin kaavun alta kepeillä. Siunaile sä vaan, me ohjataan paavimobiilia.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 647: Kyllähän tää lirkuttelun lisääntyminen liittyy siihen, et duunareita kuskataan kuutioittain pellolle ja tilalle palkataan robottien säätäjiä ja tekoälykouluttajia. Ne haluu mukavia monitoimitiloja joissa on limska- ja namiautomaatit ja pelihuoneita. Sen hinnalla ne on valmiit myymään firmalle koko sielunsa, vaikka nukkumaan maisemakonttorissa mukavissa riippukeinuissa. Puhelinten pienet valokehät vaan valaisevat salia. Ympärillä lapsukaiset larppailevat sulosti.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 685: Yhteyttä jumalaan tai filosofiaan voi kokea hikiliikunnassa tai tavassa pukeutua. Saarinenkin pitää huolta kunnosta, vaikka vaikuttaakin piipunrassilta, ja sillä on hurjan aistikas pukeutumistyyli. Bulevardin vaatekaapissa on silmänkantamaton jono leobardinpilkkupikkutakkeja, kuin Aku Ankalla seilorinuttuja. Tiede, taide, uskonto ja urheilu on aina ollu sen sydäntä lähellä. Siinä olis ainesta filosofikuninkaaxi, tai ehkä lentäjäxi, kuten Zorron konnasta, jonka kenraali Xavier potkaisi parvekkeelta alas seinäpanelin läpi. Voisivat sit lennellä Pipsan kaa kahestaan. Eski ohjais ja Pipsa järjestelis päntryä. Ex-pastorin ne vois ottaa stuertixi.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 690:
obs"/>
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 691: Hemmetin "me suomalaiset" ja iänikuiset Mannergeimin läsnäolot pizialusvaatteineen. Kun mä olin pieni muu perhe teki kiusaa kysymällä onko Miisu läsnä. Mä vastasin kiukkuisena EN OLE LÄSNÄ, IZE OLET. Nykyajan johtajadramaturgeista ehkä ihailluin on (oli) Steve Jobs. Tärkeää ei ole tuote, vaan imago. Onnex se kuoli siihen hoitamattomaan syöpäänsä, inhottava syyläinen kilpikonnapusero. Toinen mainio esimerkki on Kim jong-il, joka lisää tuottavuutta vaan kazelemalla esim. liukuhihnoja tai vihannespenkkejä.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 697: Kuzumuksessa on kyse erityisesti siitä, miten henkilö suhtautuu saamaansa tehtävään. Tekeekö hän sitä, koska työ antaa hyvän palkan? Vai onko kyseinen tehtävä hänelle kuzumus, jossa hän saa toteuttaa izeään ja tehdä samalla jotain hyödyllistä toisille? Hoblassa oli just kokosivun mainos: Söker du meningfullt arbete? Tarkemmin lukien kyse oli vapaaehtoistoiminnasta. Jos sä oot nollan arvoinen työmarkkinoilla, tee sit charityä, niin säästyy veronmaxajilta sekin raha. Kaikki se on kotiinpäin.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 954: The participant is approached with respect, handed a bulk cut flower with a kiss or handshake depending on gender, and treated as a miraculous (if suspect) specimen of life. (I realize the romanticism of this way of speaking, but that’s the way I think, and it works. Everybody buys it hook, line, and sinker.) Whether a clown or a king, the participant is assumed to possess potential that nobody can quite name. (Not before nor after the treatment. But that is not the point.)
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 985: While I do not intend to argue the matter here, from my point of view an implicit negativism dominates academic philosophy. The Paphos seminar seeks to avoid that emotional touch of death. The aim of the Paphos seminar is to celebrate life and humanity, not to diminish or reify it. The fact that some aspects of life might be hard to define objectively or model with available modes of representation does not prove them non-existent.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 987: Eskin on positiivinen antipositivisti, hurraa Sartrelle, Heideggerille ja muille hämärämiehille. Se tuulettaa apinoiden voittoa muusta luonnosta, ja läpyttää pankkinobelistille, joka osoitti osan laahusta kuuluvankin työvoiman ulkopuolelle. Henkivoimat voivat sittenkin olla totta vaikka ne ei vaikuta mihinkään muuhun kuin niihin uskovaisiin päihin. Onhan sekin jotakin. Silti mä en ihan ilmasexi osta tota tunneköyhyyden syytöstä, kylla plussan ja pakkasen välillä on muitakin lämpötiloja, ei kaikkien tarvi Eskin lailla hehkuttaa olematta jotain pahoja.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 1000: Pafoxella ei paljon ajatella Kahnemannin systeemissä 2, Millerin 7:ää tietoisuuden palikkaa ilmassa heitellen, vaan enempi tossa systeemissä 1, rinnakkaisprosessoiden liskoaivoilla. Mikäs se oli miehiään tää Kahnemann? No sekin on pankkinobelisti, amerikanjutku, joka vanhemmiten pehmeni miettimään mikä kullekin on mukavaa. Ongelma tässä liskoaivoihin luottamisessa on et vaikka ne on hurjan nopeat ja niillä on oikotie kaikkiin ruumiin toimintoihin, niillä ei lopultakaan ole kauheen monta pyydystä vedessä, se on sitä EAT EAT, FUCK FUCK; KILL KILL tematiikkaa mitä ne tarkkailevat, tosi ovelasti tosin. (Tohon Kahnemanniin pitänee vielä palata.)
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 1002: If 100 people manage to focus for five hours on themes that touch everybody and bear on the grand themes of life in a subjectively significant way, reaching personally relevant insights in the course of the process, any normal human being can attest to the fact that something of significance has happened even if it is not immediately obvious what has taken place.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 1027: The Paphos seminar is not statement-based. The seminar does not seek to provide the ”right” answers. It does not even identify ”fundamental themes”. No particular beliefs are targeted as objects of criticism or veneration. Instead, the content is expected to shine through as if behind a veil. Generic themes such as ”choice”, ”respect”, ”love”, ”temporality” serve like melodies in the background.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 1052: In actual practice, much of academic philosophy is elitist and assumes a pretence of knowledge (somewhat like economics, as described by Hayek in his towering Nobel speech). I find much of academic philosophy fear-based as it seeks to pinpoint mistakes and operates with conceptual criticism as the leading faculty of mind. The result is the lack of synthetic, life-enhancing contributions (a point made clear in Gardner’s Five Minds for the Future).
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 1056: Kai tässä on vähän haikeahkoa jäähyväistä sinne metsätalon perälle. Hmm, täytyypä lukaista, et mikäs Hayekissa on niin tornimaisen positiivista. (Tästä, kuten Eskin tai muidenkaan suurmiesten valtaenemmistöstä, mä en ole ennen rekisteröinyt mitään.) Nähtävästi toi hitlerwiixinen Aatun maanmies (ensimmäisiä pankkinobelisteja v 1974, samoihin aikoihin kun Eski sai sen paskakaivoarvosanansa gradusta) tuli kuuluisax klassisen liberalismin puolustajana, sen oikeana linjamiehenä, markkinatalouden yhtenä vapahtajana ikävien keynesiläiten suunnitelmatalousajatuxista. Karl Popperin henkilökohtainen hyvä ystävä. Pääpointti oli et hinnat on apinoiden paras viestintäväline.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 1060: Paphos seminar remains fundamentally a project of Western orientation, with a strong emphasis on reasoning and language. If (to use a deliberately stereotypical example) a no-nonsense middle-aged male engineer comes to the seminar, as often happens, I find it important that he does not find anything in the seminar suspicious even in retrospect. Nobody should be lured into doing something he or she might find embarrassing afterwards.
xxx/ellauri027.html on line 1364: Väitöskirjan motto on Russellin raamatullinen elämänohje “Älä seuraa joukkoa pahuuteen”. Halusiko Russell sitten johtaa joukkoja, vai pysyä niistä erossa? Mistä joukosta tarkkaan ottaen oli kyse? Russellin elämän aikana käytiin kaksi maailmansotaa, natsismi ja fasismi nousivat ja tuhoutuivat, Britannian maailmanvalta romahti, Yhdysvallat ja Neuvostoliitto kohosivat suurvalloiksi, asevarustelu sai globaalit mittasuhteet, yhteiskuntaluokkien suhteet muuttuivat, ‘viktoriaaninen’ arvomaailma rapautui, uusia yhteiskunnallisia voimia ja liikkeitä syntyi jne. Himanen ei tällaisia tapahtumia edes ohimennen mainize, ei edes Bertin pasifismia ja vankilareissua.
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 115: Ruozalaisilla ei muutenkaan ole vintillä räsymatot suorassa eikä kaikki muumit laaxossa. Kun ne yxityisti terveydenhoidon, ne korvas terveen järjen sairaalla rahanhimolla. Semmelweissin opetuxet on unohtuneet. Suoraan ruumishuoneelta synnytyssaliin skrobaamaan alatutkimuxia. Ja sit ne ihmettelee: mix meitä mobbataan? Muut on ilkeitä.
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 117: Jenkit on paskiaisia. Britit on paskiaisia. Ruozalaiset on paskiaisia. Mikä niille on yhteistä? Sodan voittajia, globalisoivia talousliberaaleja. Ne on mahtailevia narsisteja. Sosiopaattivaltioita. Oisko aika vaihtaa maailmanpoliisia.
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 323: Joseph Burgo is a lying, cheating, scammer who has no business being a psychologist. Based on his actions, he is probably a psychopath himself. He will never admit this because he is narcissistic to the extreme. The state of California should take away his license.
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 418: Kyllä Hermann näyttää olleen äidin poika, isän kanssa tuli sitten riitoja. Ukki Gündertillä oli iso kirjasto. Hermanni pantiin seminaariin, mutta se ei tykännyt, "Dichter oder nichts", sanoi jääräpäisesti. Tuli molemmat. 14-vuotiaana sillä oli depis: "ich möchte hingehen wie das Abendbrot". Izemurha jäi yrityxexi. Seurasi sarja kasvatuslaitoxia ja amixia. Kirjakauppa-apulaisena vaihtoi vanhempien etiikan estetiikkaan. Käänteinen Kierkegaard. Ei kuitenkaan kyttyrävazainen, pikemminkin laiha poika. Likinäköisenä pääsi C-miehexi. Maailmansodan vapaaehtoisena Saxan armeijassa oli kirjastoapulaisena. Avioliitto Bernouillin Marian, freelance-valokuvaajan kanssa meni kehnosti ja Hermanni lähti maailmanympärimatkalle Intiaan. Nelikymppisenä maailmansodan aikana tuli takaiskuja (isä kuoli, Mia läksi), ja Hermanni tuli pöpixi. Pääsi tutustumaan zygoanalyysiin läheltä. Perheestä päästyä sillä alkoi oikein mukavat ja tuotteliaat ajat Luganossa. Vaihtoi sakemannista takasin schweizarixi. Ei se oikein kunnon saku koskaan ollutkaan, tollainen kosmopoliitti ja pasifisti. 2 muuta vaimoa seurasi. Asui Luganossa ökytalossa Ninonin kanssa eri kerroxissa ja maalasi akvarelleja luppoaikoina. Hermanni oli myös kova musiikkimies. Vieraina Schweizissä kävivät Bertolt Brecht ja Thomas Mann. Ei Hermanni siis ollut mikään nazi. 1946 päsähti siitä hyvästä Noobeli. Niiku osotettiin sakuille etteime teitä vihata kunhan pysytte kyykyssä ja ajattelette niiku me, tai edes niiku schweiziläiset.
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 747: (Mobilier) Fauteuil dont le haut dossier incliné, l'assise et les accoudoirs sont garnis et rembourrés, meuble caractéristique du style Louis-Philippe.
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 929: mellan människobarn i landet
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 952: Gripenberg toimi Finlands Svenska författarföreningin puheenjohtajana 1919–1920 ja sai valtion kirjallisuuspalkinnon yhdeksän kertaa. Hän oli ehdolla Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon saajaksi vuonna 1931 ja sai Helsingin yliopiston kunniatohtorin arvon vuonna 1932. Niin aina. Kusipäät palkizee toisiaan, paukuttaa nahkahousuja ja selkään toisiansa.
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 1067: Nyt mun hyboteesi on että takana on eurohyve eli äijyys. Tässä länsimaisessa viikinkimäisessä meemissä pahe ja häpeä on noloutta, luuuseriutta kompetitiivisessä pelissä, eikä tota itämaisempaa syyllistä nöyristelyä kooperatiivisen tiimin sisällä. Ja just six kapitalismi syntyi lännessä, ryövärien, keräilijöiden ja kauppiaiden keskessä, seppoilun ja kilpailun kehdossa, cro magnonien päässä. Parrattomat denisovanihmiset painui itään vinkumaan mekoissaan, työntämään kottareita riisivainioilla ja kumartelemaan peltoa lannoittavia esi-isiä. Väliin jäi paimentolaiset partriarkkoineen ja kiivaine tuulenpuhuri-jumalineen, jotka kyllä tiesi kuinka häpy kätketään omaan sydämeen. Kun ruumiit hävii hiekkaan ja vaihdetaan maisemaa koko ajan, mobiili jumala on paras.
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 1211: Sathya Sai Baba's materialisations of vibhuti (holy ash) and other small objects such as rings, necklaces, and watches were a source of controversy for the agnostics and non believers. Some have analyzed them as being mere sleights of hand, while his followers have considered them as signs of his divinity. Ali Baba förbii enemmän kuin 40 rosvoa.
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 1214: As a child, he was described as "unusually intelligent" and charitable, though not necessarily academically inclined, as his interests were of a more spiritual nature. He was uncommonly talented in devotional music, dance and drama. From a young age, he has been alleged to have been capable of materialising objects such as food and sweets out of thin air.
Olikohan sillä huonot hampaat. Iskä oli sille hirmu vihainen, ehkä syystä. Äitikin oli käväissyt salaa hunajapurkilla. Babaa pisti skorpioni ja se alkoi puhua sanskriittiä. Babar oli ennustanut kuolevansa 96v terveenä kuin pukki. Se kuolikin 84v kun tuoli kaatui sen päälle. Jälkeenpäin selitettiin et se oli tarkoittanut kuukalenterivuosia. Se ei yrittänyt USAaan, teki vaan jonkun lomamatkan Ugandaan.
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 1217:
obs"/>
xxx/ellauri044.html on line 1218: Vielä 1 samanlainen guru oli Steve Jobs. Aiivan läpipaska äijä, jos kukaan. Empatia puuttui kokonaan. Tääkin tyyppi kuulostaa tutulta: "Hän osasi jotenkin selittämättömästi tunnistaa heikon kohtasi, joka sai sinut säpsähtämään ja tuntemaan izesi pienexi." Se on yleinen piirre karismaattisissa narsisteissa jotka osaavat manipuloida toisia. Onnex Steve kuoli syöpään ja se toinen samanlainen sai aivoinfarktin. Loppuihan se vittuilu. Taaskaan ei ollut pompitettu oikein: Steve piti sääntöjä pilkkanaan ja uhmasi opettajia, eivätkä hänen ottovanhempansa koskaan rankaisseet häntä hänen rikkeistään. Biologinen äiti hylkäs pikku Steven vauvana, mamu-isä oli pelkkä spermanluovuttaja. Sitä piti sitten kostaa kaikille. Ja tehdä törkeästi ylihinnoiteltua tietotekniikkaa. Ja pitää typeriä turtlenekkejä. Aivan läpipaska äijä. Ne jotka tykkää mäkkäristä pitää sitä sankarina ja nerona. Stalinkin teki joitain virheitä. On se kyllä vittua.
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 232: Tähänkin tarvitaan vielä taulukko: onko kirjailija snobi eli nousukas vaiko dandy eli laskukas. Mistä säädystä lähtöisin ja mihin päätyy ize. Sillä näyttää olevan paljon ennustusvoimaa kirjailijan tuotantoon. Hilpeät on matkalla ylöspäin, laskukkaat on haikeampia. Ja voihan sitä ehtiä mennä ylös alaskin kuin Vekkulassa. Ja minkä ikäsenä alottaa kynäilyn, sekin vaikuttaa. Onko pää- vaiko sivutoiminen. Onko yxinäinen vaiko perheellinen. Ryyppyveikko julkkis vaiko erakko. Minkä alalajin narsisti. Jne.
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 279: Georgette Leblanc (8. helmikuuta 1875 Rouen – 27. lokakuuta 1941 Cannes) oli ranskalainen sopraano, näyttelijä ja kirjailija. Hän oli Nobel-palkitun kirjailijan Maurice Maeterlinckin pitkäaikainen kumppani ja puoliso (1895–1918), jolle Maeterlinck omisti kirjansa Le trésor des humbles (1896) (Köyhäin aarteet, suom. F. E. Sillanpää).
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 295: "Astu johonkin seuraan, jossa on olemassaolon masentavimmilta huolilta turvattuja miehiä ja naisia, valioseuraa jos niin haluat, lausu siinä sanat ilo onni autuus ihanne, ja anna apuenkelin koota koriin herätetyt mielikuvat. Mitäs ostoskoriin tuli? Kauniita yhteenkietoutuneita ruumiita, kultaa jalokiviä, palazi suuri puisto, terveysvaikutteinen taikajuoma, eriskummallisia koristeita, turhamaisuuxia, ja ennen kaikkea hyviä ruokia ja viinejä, hyvää kakkua, hienoja päivällisiä, uhkeita punkkia. Eikö muuta? (toki: nopeita autoja ja lentohärveleitä, julkisuutta, kansansuosiota, valtaa, läpytystä, noobeleita, ym ym.) Ostoskorissasi on 10K itemiä. Siirry kassalle.
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 304: Kyllä luxus on rahanarvoista ja varsin kadehdittavaa. Sillä voi näyttää muille et on kapassiteettia. Sillä Maurisekin tienasi ja pokkas vielä Noobelilta miljoonan. Ajattele vaikka merkkivaatteita. Joku raita tai brändi pyllyssä maxaa enemmän kuin rätti ize. Eikyl tässä on Maurisella aikalailla tahallista naivismia mukana. Silläkin voi tienata.
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 342: Lopussa se rupee jopa sekoilemaan meedioista ja mistä lie ouija boardeista. Säällittävää. Sitä oli tohon aikaan paljon liikkeellä, jopa nobelisteissa. Fyysikotkin ezi jumalaa kvanttiraosta, eze piilis siellä edes pikkiriikkisenä kuten piru detaljeissa.
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 408: „Doch der Segen kommt von oben“
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 419: „Drum prüfe wer sich ewig bindet, ob sich das Herz zum Herzen findet“
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 452: obi Friedrich">Friedrich Heinrich Jacobi 1743 –1819 oli luisevan näköinen jämäkkäleukainen länsisaksalainen filosofi, joka kehitti termin 'nihilismi' ja esitti sen olevan perussyy valistuksen ja kantilaisuuden epäonnistumiseen. Spekulatiivisen järjenkäytön sijaan hän puhui uskon ja ilmoituksen puolesta. Ei tykännyt briteistä eikä moosexenuskoisista. Syntyi tietysti Düsseldorfissa ja tottakai kuoli Münchenissä.
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 453: Jacobi voidaan nähdä edelläkävijänä oikeistokonservatiivifilosofeille, jotka kritisoivat filosofiaa relativismista ja vaarallisena uskolle.
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 521: Kantin maine sai kuitenkin alkunsa odottamattomasta lähteestä. Vuonna 1786 Kantin julkkixempi oppilas Karl Reinhold alkoi julkaista avoimia kirjeitä kantilaisesta filosofiasta. Näissä kirjeissä Reinhold esitti Kantin filosofian vastauksena silloiseen kiistaan panteismista. Joku Friedrich Jacobi oli syyttänyt hieman aiemmin edesmennyttä G. E. Lessingiä spinozalaisuudesta. Lessingin ystävä Moses Mendelssohn kiisti tämän. Heidän välilleen kehittyi kitkerä julkinen kiista.
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 523: Lessing oli se vähän lässy runoilija, brittisymppari. Mooses nyt oli vaan joku moosexenuskoinen Mooses. Olixe sukua sille säveltäjälle? Entä tää Jacobi kekäs se nyt oli? Mixkä ne oli niin kitkeriä? Viroistako siinä oli kyse?
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 534: Monet Kantin merkittävimmistä oppilaista, kuten Reinhold, Fichte ja Jakob Sigismund Beck, etenivät kantilaisuudesta yhä jyrkempään idealismiin. Tämä sai aikaan saksalaisen idealismin nousun. Kant vastusti tätä kehitystä ja arvosteli Fichteä avoimessa kirjeessään vuonna 1799. Nappuloilta lähti mopo käsistä.
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 569: In dieser aussichtslosen Lage bekam er 1788 in Zürich eine Stelle als Hauslehrer, die er aber nur zwei Jahre innehatte, da er der Auffassung war, dass man, bevor man Kinder erzieht, zuallererst die Eltern erziehen müsse. Dort verlobte er sich mit Johanna Marie Rahn (1755–1819), Tochter des Kaufmanns und Waagmeisters Johann Hartmut Rahn und Nichte des Dichters Klopstock.
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 575: Nach einem kurzen Intermezzo auf einer Hauslehrerstelle in Warschau nahm Fichte Anfang November 1791 eine auf ein Jahr befristete Anstellung als Hauslehrer des Sohns des Ehepaars Louise von Krockow, geb. von Göppel, die mit Kant persönlich bekannt war, und Heinrich Joachim Reinhold von Krockow (1736–1796), Königl. Preußischer Obrist, im gräflichen Schloss Krockow in der Nähe der pommerellischen Ostseeküste an. Im selben Jahr besuchte er Kant in Königsberg, wo dieser ihm einen Verleger für seine Schrift Versuch einer Critik aller Offenbarung (1792) verschaffte, die anonym veröffentlicht wurde. Das Buch galt zunächst als ein lange erwartetes religionsphilosophisches Werk von Kant selbst. Als Kant den Irrtum klarstellte, war Fichte berühmt und erhielt einen Lehrstuhl für Philosophie an der Universität Jena, den er 1794 antrat. Zuvor hatte er nach längerer Überlegung, ob eine Eheschließung ihm nicht die „Flügel abschneide“, 1793 Johanna Rahn geheiratet. Drei Jahre später kam Sohn Immanuel Hermann (1796–1879) zur Welt.
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 599: Schelling koki, että filosofian oli tarkasteltava ihmisen ja maailman (luonnon) välistä vuorovaikutusta, toisin sanoen tietoisuutta tai maailman kokemista, sekä subjektista käsin fichteläisellä metodologialla, että sen aikaisen tieteen metodologialla objektiivisesta maailmasta käsin. Koska idealistit kehittäessään kantilaista filosofiaa kyseenalaistavat Kantin ”olion sinänsä” (die Dinge an sich) ja käsittelevät tietoisuutta tuotteliaana toimintana (produktive Tätigkeit, jonkinlainen Hördelin-tyyppinen ”Seynia” muistuttava ilmiö), on tämän vaikutus nähtävissä monissa myöhemmissä eurooppalaisissa filosofisissa suuntauksissa.
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 661: Pari 3 prosenttia porukoista on nettiriippuvaisia. Se on melkein yhtä paljon kun on homoja. Evelina ja Ivan Dolgov eivät lankea nettiriippuvuuden syntiin kun päivittävät Helluntaikirkon nuorisotyösivuja. On tässä aviisissa paljon myös Valittujen Palojen tunnelmaa. Valitut Palat lopetettiin tilaajien puutteessa. Toimittajista tuli positiivareita. Ne on varmaan kaikki netissä ja somessa. Päihdesäätiö listaa 10 riippuvuuden lajia: keskustelu-, nettipeli- nettirahapeli-, nettisexi-, netiseurustelu- , verkkoyhteisö-, informaatio-, surffailu-, mobiili-, ja yleinen tietokoneriipuvuus. On siis pystyttävä tekemään valintoja, jos aikoo pitää netin käytön tapissa. Ihminen tekee valintoja arvojensa pohjalta. Ivan sanoo reilusti, että hänen arvonsa perustuvat raamattuun ja pelittävään jumalasuhteeseen. Esimerkixi aikuisviihdesivut hän jättää käyt.kaz. kokonaan väliin. Hidastempoisina ne veisivät liikaa aikaa. Perinteinen käteenveto käy minuutissa. Tutkimusten mukaan altteimpia ovat ujot pojat, joilla on epäonnistumisia naisjutuissa. Virtuaalitumputuxessa oikean elämän kurjuuden voi unohtaa. Voi tyydyttää emotionaalisia, psyykkisiä ja fyysisiä tarpeitaan.
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 663: Nettiviihde on paha kilpailija uskonnolle. Molemmissa voi luoda kontakteja tarvizematta pelätä tulevansa torjutuxi ulkonäön, ujouden tai sosiaalisen kömpelyyden takia. On huolestuttavaa, jos tietokone syrjäyttää nuoren parhaan kaverin. Netissä voi törmätä vaikka pornoon. Haapasalo-Pesun mukaan tavallinen terve nuori selviää tälläisestä, mutta hauras yxilö voi vahingoittua. Tietokoneessa on nappi, jota painamalla koneen saa kiinni. Kirsi-Maria Haapasalo-Pesu muistuttaa. Jos nettiriippuvuus aiheuttaa syyllisyyden ja häpeän tunteita, syntyy rako liikenteessä, johon jeesusmobiili saa työnnettyä nokkansa.
xxx/ellauri056.html on line 669: Sitten tuli jumalan vasaran eka kumautus. Puhelin soi ja Osmolle ilmoitettiin että teidän poikanne on kuollut. Jäi rekan alle. Osmo tiesi miltä jehovasta on täytynyt tuntua pääsiäisenä. Vaik sehän kyllä tiesi koko jutun ennalta. Osasi valmistautua. Osmo ei. Kiersi kotipihan nurmikkoa ja huusi, tämä ei voi olla totta. On se, muistutti rakas jumala. Osmo kyseli jumalalta, mixi hulttionuoret saavat elää, mutta hänen erinomainen poikansa otettin pois. Just six, sanoi jumala arvoituxellisesti. Tää on sitä teodikeaa. No Osmo ajatteli kuin Job, että herra ottaa herra antaa, herra kanankakan kantaa. Osmo tilittää. Viiden vuoden kuluttua Osmo totesi töistä tultua että osa tavaroista oli tiessään ja vaimo lähtenyt. Vaimo läx. Eikä vaan kirkolle ostamaan lisää lammaskaalta. Nyt Osmo repi perseensä. Jollei jumala nyt heti ilmesty, hän lähtee kapakkaan ja jättää koko uskonelämän! Pelästynyt Herra ilmestyi hänelle Leo Niemelän hahmossa. Tuskat ja murheet jäivät siihen. On se Leo aika epeli!
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 185: Säälittävää rupusakkia nää hämeenkyröläiset maalaiset. Pablo Ährölä ährää Tampereella umpitunnelissa filmi poikki. Kotona Ährölässä Uuno Turhapuron muisti palaa pätkittäin. 2 miekkosta ilosteli Alman kaa. Paavo hoiperteli paikalle ja vonkas lisää viinaa sekä hilloviivaa. Hoipparoi pitkin nurkkia. Nimitteli Almaa huoraxi. Osaakin olla läpimätä setä. Kaikkein traagisinta on että Almassa on Paavon vakka kantensa löytänyt. Ne on kuin Toope ja sen Sikri. Alma siivoo pillittävän Paavon lattialta ja ronttaa vuokra-autoon. Vienhän mie, mut herkee jo vikisemästä. Samanlaisen juoppolallin kuin nobelkirjailija izekin. Alma oli sille äiti. Olikohan Sikrikin. Sikri on anagrammi Kirsi Riskistä.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 682: Leino muuntautui 1910-luvulla hahmoksi, jollaisena jälkimaailma on oppinut hänet tuntemaan: pyylevöitynyt boheemi pitkine kiharoineen ja viittoineen, ravintoloissa työskentelevä flanööri ja seuramies, jolla oli laajat sosiaaliset verkostot. Vuonna 1914 Leino avioitui Robert Kajanuksen tyttären, harpputaiteilija Aino Kajanuksen kanssa, mutta jo seuraavana vuonna hän jätti jälleen taakseen vakiintuneen elämänmenon.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 769: Harmittiko Nestor Kuulapäätä Knut Hamsunin kohuttu talonpoikaisrompskumenestys 1917? Ja vuoden 1920 noobeli? Vai ajattelikose päinvastoin että jes! Anch'io son pittore! Tulee se munkin vuoro vielä. Niinkuin tulikin.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 790: Hizin nopeasti nää rikastuvat, kuin Swiss family Robinson. Elävät puulusikan aikakautta. Kohta on hopealusikat tätä menoa. Niin on kun jotkut Miltonin Aatami ja Eeva, tyhmä Iisakki ei edes tajua et ristihuuli on pieniin päin. Minkä ikänen se ize on?
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 824: Knut Hamsun (Born: Knud Pedersen, August 4, 1859, Lom, Gudbrandsdalen, United Kingdoms of Sweden and Norway, (present-day Lom, Norway) Died:February 19, 1952, Nørholm, Grimstad, Norway1859-1952) oli norjalainen kirjailija, joka lukeutuu tunnetuimpiin hahmoihin maansa kirjallisuuden historiassa. Hän sai Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon vuonna 1920. Hamsun oli köyhän perheen poika, eikä hän käynyt koulua kuin runsaat 250 päivää. Sen kyllä huomaa.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 829: Hamsun 41v tunsi entuudestaan joitakin suomalaisia. Hän oli tavannut Pariisissa Albert Edelfeltin ja Akseli Gallén-Kallelan ja hän tutustui nopeasti Helsingin taiteilijapiireihin. Hän tuli tuntemaan aluksi kirjailijoita ja tapasi Alexander Slotten, Konni Zilliacuksen ja Wentzel Hagelstamin. Zilliacushan oli salaisen suomalaisen vastarintaliikkeen Kagaalin johtaja. Hagelstameilla on divari Fredan kulmassa. Ystäväpiiri kasvoi kuitenkin ripeästi ja siihen kuuluivat muun muassa kirjailijat Mikael Lybeck, Juhani Aho ja Werner Söderhjelm. Sekä Jean Sibelius että Robert Kajanus ottivat osaa seuralliseen lystinpitoon helsinkiläisissä ravintoloissa.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 845: A hundred and one years ago, in 1917, Knut Hamsun published what was probably his most influential and at the same time most controversial novel: Markens grøde (translated into English as Growth of the Soil). This story about the colonization of new farmland in northern Norway (Hammarby, luulajansaamexi Hambra, mistä Knupo oli peräsin) by the pioneer Isak and his wife Inger attained immense popularity in Hamsun’s home country and abroad, and earned its author the Nobel Prize in literature. In later years, it has often been criticized for, among other things, postulated parallels to Nazi »blood and soil« ideology, for its racist and colonialist portrayal of the Sami, and for its antagonism towards female self-determination.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 852: Much has changed since the publication of Markens grøde. The planet’s human population has almost quadrupled, from fewer than two billion in 1917 to more than seven billion now, and is estimated to reach ten to eleven billion before the end of this century.10 Simultaneously, human-made changes to the Earth’s ecosystems and climate have reached an unprecedented scale. While levels of consumption vary greatly from one country to another and between different social classes, there can be no doubt that globally, the use of both renewable and non-renewable resources has risen immensely during the last hundred years. This development began, of course, long before 1917, with the Industrial Revolution constituting an important premise. However, it was not until after the end of the Second World War that the human transformation of the planet began to advance with such enormous speed that the time since then is now often referred to as the Great Acceleration.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 904: C'est mû par ses expériences que Georges Simenon simplifie radicalement son écriture et observe avec rigueur le fonctionnement de l'écriture commerciale selon les genres : littérature enfantine d'aventures et de combats, écrits de cœur pour midinettes, histoires sensuelles pour dactylos, drames effrayants pour concierges, historiettes de gare pour voyageurs, écrits érotiques ou licences pornographiques pour vrais hommes comme lui-meme ...
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 921: C'est lors d'un séjour à New York en novembre 1945 qu'il engage en qualité de secrétaire bilingue Denise Ouimet, qu'il épousera le 22 juin 1950 à Reno dans le Nevada (ville réputée pour ses procédures de mariage et de divorce rapide), un jour après avoir obtenu le divorce avec Régine Renchon.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 941: En 1972, Simenon, qui a soixante-neuf ans, renonce au roman, mais rédige une longue autobiographie de vingt et un volumes, dictant tout sur un petit magnétophone:
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 977: Wang Wei: Ei niin, on liika pelvoittavaa. Broiskulle penislukko... Lähde IL Cellmate on bluetoothilla puhelimeen yhteydessä oleva penislukko, jota ohjataan siihen kytkeytyvän mobiilisovelluksen avulla. Tarkoitus on, että lukkoon pukeutuva ihminen voi luovuttaa vallan siitä jollekin toiselle henkilölle. Tässä tapauksessa vallan voi kuitenkin ottaa myös hakkeri.
Kaikenlaisii ongelmii seuraa tietotekniikasta (em. lähde). Viime vuonna puolestaan todistettiin, miten internetiin yhteydessä olevan anustapin pystyi lukitsemaan kiristysohjelmalla.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 1199: Elina Vaara oli Tuijunkantajien kuumaverisimpiä runoilijoita. Ei vaitiskaa, se oli oikein sievä ja sävyisä. Vuonna 1924 ilmestynyt Nuoren Voiman Liiton albumi Tuijunkantajat kertoi jo paljon tulevan runoilijasukupolven muutostahdosta ja ansaintalogiikoista. Itsenäisyyden jälkeisessä Suomessa ryhmää kovaäänisiä runoilijoita yhdisti toivo uljaasta huomisesta, ansainta ajankohtaisista aiheista, suuntautuminen globaaliin bisnexeen, tuulenhaistelu sekä rohkea yrityskulttuuri. Vuonna 1928 ilmestyi samanniminen lehti, jonka kanteen oli kirjattuna ryhmän manifesti: ” – – Tulkaa, älkää peljätkö: Teidät on määrätty luomaan uutta ja suurta. Katkaiskaa kylmä rengas, joka pusertaa persettä: Olkaa oma itsenne ja tunnustelkaa elintä!”.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 1203: Mistä tuijunkannossa sitten oli kysymys? Tyylivirtauksen synnyn voi tulkita mahdollisuudeksi likapyykkiin, vallitsevan tilanteen ja runouskäsityksen uudelleen määrittelyyn. Suomalaisuudessa maalaisliitolla on aina ollut keskeinen osa: talonpojan sitkeys ja kova reikäleipä ovat tuttua kuvastoa, samoin pimeässä tapahtuva pirttiviljelys. Tuijunkantajien riveissä seisoi konerobotteja vetämässä futuristista piriä, vaikka maaseudun lyylit taustalla vielä kikattelevat.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 1292: kun Robert Zimmermannkin pokkas niillä noobelin.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 1340: Katri Valan vanhemmat ovat Porvoossa syntynyt metsänhoitaja Robert Waldemar Wadenström ja Alexandra Fredrika Mäki. Heidän esikoisensa Katri syntyi äidin kotipaikkakunnalla Muoniossa. Vuoden kuluttua perhe muutti Porvooseen, jossa syntyi veli Erkki, ja edelleen 1905 Ilomantsiin, jossa syntyi toinen veli Niilo. Robert kuoli jumalten keinussa nälkään pimpolassa vuonna 1911 ollessaan 37 ja Katri 10 (surullista), jonka jälkeen äiti ja lapset muuttivat takaisin Porvooseen. Vala kirjoitti ylioppilaaksi 1919 ja valmistui kansakoulunopettajaksi Heinolan seminaarista 1922. Vuosina 1922–1928 hän työskenteli kansakoulunopettajana Kuopion maalaiskunnassa, Valkealassa ja Askolassa sekä Ilomantsissa vuosina 1925–1929. Kaikenlaisia paikkoja. Heitettiinköhän se aina ulos punikkina? Aika ankaran kansakoulunopettajan näköinen.
xxx/ellauri057.html on line 1445: Nyt niillä on jo ydinohjuxet ja lennokit ja jenkit. Noobeleita ja rahaa aivan perhanasti kuten aina. Ne nyt vaan on parempia, se on myönnettävä.
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 45: En varsinaisesti itkenyt Marie Antoinetten kuolemaa. Surin onnetonta rakkautta ja sitä, että hänet erotettiin lapsistaan ja sitä onnetonta kirjettä, jonka hän kirjoitti lokakuisena aamuna 1793. Hänen kälynsä madame Elisabeth ei milloinkaan saanut sitä. Siitä syystä vihaan Robespierreä enemmän kuin hänen muiden julmuuksiensa tähden.Olisi ollut aivan eri asia, jos hän olisi antanut viedä kirjeen perille, ja lapset olisivat saaneet tietää heidän äitinsä ajatelleen heitä viimeiseen henkäykseen asti. Tai että se pieni salainen viesti olisi toimitettu eräälle ruotsalaiselle aatelismiehelle, joka odotti tietoja huolesta harmaana. Moinen inhimillinen ajatus tuskin edes pälkähti Robespierren kylmään, laskelmoivaan päähän. Hän sen sijaan kätki viestit kylmäverisesti omiin patjoihinsa. Saatoin aivan nähdä hänet silmissäni! Hän luki niitä varmasti joka ilta ennen kynttilan sammuttamista: "Eivät voi erottaa sydämiä toisistaan" hah hah, hän nauroi kylmästi ja kätki kirjeen taas patjaansa. Siellä hän piilotteli niitä yhdeksän kuukauden ajan. Mutta eräänä kesäkuun yönä 1794 herra obespierre Maximilien">Robespierre ei enää kallistakaan päätään pehmeälle pielukselleen. Hänellä ei nimittäin ole päätä enää, se on katkaistu Place de la Révolutionilla. Silloin kirjeet tulevat esiin. Vastaanottajat vain eivat enää ole tavattavissa. Madame Elisabeth-parka koki saman kohtalon kuin onneton kälynsä, samalla paikalla. Vain kirjeet jäivät. Marie Antoinette-raukka! Hänkin oli kerran nuori ja iloinen, ja asui rakastettuna kauniissa linnassa joka oli koko maailman keskipiste.
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 128: Kan den relativa tystnaden i klimatfrågan sen mer än ett halvår tillbaka ha att göra med att världen just nu skakas av tidernas värsta virusepidemi? Över en miljon människor har avlidit i covid-19. Världens länder stänger ner. Arbetsplatser försvinner. Människor sägs upp från sina jobb. Skolor stängs.
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 160: Kaikkein traagisinta on että Hobla 2.11. kaiuttaa Expressenin näkemyxiä. Ilmastopaniikki on vaan åsiktejä, tiedekin on vaan åsikteja, ei sen kummempia synpunkteja kuin Hoblan kukkahattutätien mututuntuma. Ihan mahollista että 10.000 tutkijaa ja tutkimusta onkin väärässä ja föönätty kukkahattupää arpoo paremmin. Vittu tää on lehden varapäätoimittaja äänessä, ja toissapäivänä vastaava päätoimittaja, toinen pyylevämpi ämmyrkäinen nimeltänsä Landor, kehuskeli kuinka se on ajellut nyt korona-aikana entistäkin enemmän yxityisautolla, ja kuinka sen kaverit (ne joilla on siihen varaa) suunnittelee useamman auton ostoa. Pitäsköhän tääkin läpyskä heittää rodeen Herlinin sanomien perässä.
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 283: - En halua jäädä jumittamaan paikoilleni. Kuten obbes Thomas">Thomas Hobbes sanoi, liikkeen loppuminen on sama kuin kuolema.
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 366: One of the merchants, Antonio, is having a problem with his ships being late in returning to Venice. One of his friends, Basanio, asks him for money. He needs it to woo a wealthy woman and has no money himself but, if successful, and he marries Portia he will be able to pay it back very easily. Antonio’s money is all tied up in his business, which is in trouble and the only way he can help his friend is to borrow from a money-lender.
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 401: In the way Shakespeare ends the play he shows how deeply-rooted anti-Semitism was in his time. A Twenty-first century audience will feel sorry for Shylock but an Elizabethan audience would probably have cheered.
xxx/ellauri059.html on line 508: Pääosissa: Daniel Sharman (Lorenzo de’ Medici), Bradley James (Giuliano de’ Medici), Sean Bean (Jacopo Pazzi), Sarah Parish (Lucrezia de’ Medici), Raoul Bova (paavi Sixtus IV), Matteo Martari (Francesco Pazzi), Jacob Fortune Lloyd (Francesco Salviati), Alessandra Mastronardi (Lucrezia Donati), Matilda Lutz (Simonetta Vespucci), Synnøve Karslen (Clarice Orsini), Annabel Scholey (Contessina). Idea ja käsikirjoitus: Frank Spotnitz, Nicholas Meyer. Ohjaus: Sergio Mimica-Gezzan. Musiikki: Paolo Buonvino. Tunnuskappaleen esittäjä: Skin (Ann Deborah Dyer). Tuotanto: Lux Vide, Big Light Productions, Italia, 2018.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 59: Vsesojuznyj on kirjoitettu väärin s.458. Ärsyttävää puolisivistyneisyyttä. Tässä jaxossa on typerää hauskanpitoa vähäosaisempien kustannuxella ja neuvostohistorian vääristelyä. Aitoamerikkalaista koloniaali"huumoria". Food fight tästä enää puuttuisi. Rypälemarenkitortun paiskaaminen Stalinin naamaan. Kyttyräselät, spitaaliset, hebefreenikot (Saku oli sellainen) ja kaikenlaiset rammat ovat putkahtaneet loukoistaan kazelemaan tätä hupia. Taas tätä amerikkalaista arabi"terroristi"pelkoa sekottuneena vanhempaan ryssä"kommunisti"pelkoon ja saku"nazi"pelkoon.. Vizi ne pelkää kaikkia jotka vähänkin uhkaa niiden öljyhegemoniaa keski-Aasiassa. Kaikki Nobelien näiltä kentiltä saadut öljyrahat on käytetty Nobel-palkintoihin. Donald Trump vihjaa kohta vastaanottavansa fysiikan Nobel-palkinnon.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 68: The events in Germany since January 30, 1933, when Nazis came to power and declared as their aim the march to the east to capture resourcesand "living space" greatly contributed to it. The USSR realized the enormous importance of the national question and recognized the great role of the country´s history and patriotism in the consolidation of the society. There was mounting criticism of romanization. It was admitted that, in some cases, there had been overreliance on the alphabetical creativity of the linguists,engaged in language construction, which manifested itself in the creation of individual alphabets for numerically very small dialects, as well as in the overly largenumber of letters for some alphabets, in frequent disregard for the practical problemsof language construction and in the exclusive use of the Latin as a possible basis forthe creation of writing for the illiterate peoples, as well as in the insufficient attentionto the use of other alphabets (Novyi alfavit (The New Alphabet), 1934).
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 70: The cyrillization was conducted more swiftly than romanization. It did not have thesynchrony observed during the first Soviet alphabet shifts: for some peoples it tookplace in 1937-1938, for others a little later, from one to two years. With that, a singlestate body, similar to the All-Union Committee for the Development of the NewTurkic Alphabet, dedicated only to cyrillization, was not set up. New alphabets werecreated directly "in the field." Even so, the transition from the Latin alphabet to theRussian alphabet was more smooth and easy than the first “letter revolution”(Alpatov, 1993). The successful completion of cyrillization was announced in June 1941.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 121: During the trip, Borat acquires a Baywatch booklet and continues gathering footage for his documentary. He meets gay pride parade participants, politicians Alan Keyes and Bob Barr, and African-American youths. Borat is also interviewed on a local television station and proceeds to disrupt the weather report. Visiting a rodeo, Borat excites the crowd with jingoistic remarks, but then sings a fictional Kazakhstani national anthem to the tune of "The Star-Spangled Banner", receiving a strong negative reaction.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 157: Borat and Tutar blackmail Nazarbayev into giving him his job back and changing Kazakhstan's misogynistic laws. Three months later, Tutar and Borat are a reporting team and Kazakhstan has a new tradition to replace the nation's antisemitic ones: the Running of the American. It features exaggerated :) caricatures of Trump supporters pretending to spread COVID-19 and killing an effigy of Anthony Fauci. The film ends with a message encouraging viewers to vote in the upcoming presidential election.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 187: "My own favourite tribute to Borges comes in Thomas Pynchon’s Gravity’s Rainbow in which a group of Argentinian exiles, led by the adventurer Squalidozzi, and at large in Europe during World War Two, hijack a German submarine. Improbably, they are accompanied by the glamorous Graciela Imago Portales – a ‘particular friend’ of the Buenos Aires literati – to whom ‘Borges is said to have a dedicated a poem’. Two lines are cited: “El laberinto de tu incertidumbre / Me trama con la disquietante luna . . .” Of course, the quotation has puzzled scholars, as it is neatly consistent with the rhythms and motifs of Borges’ earlier work, and yet nowhere to be found in his oeuvre. It would no doubt have delighted Borges, the more so since Pynchon made it up."
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 191: Jorge Francisco Isidoro Luis Borges (Buenos Aires, 24 de agosto de 1899-Ginebra, 14 de junio de 1986) fue un escritor de cuentos, ensayos y poemas argentino, extensamente considerado una figura clave tanto para la literatura en habla hispana como para la literatura universal. Sus dos libros más conocidos, Ficciones y El Aleph, publicados en los años cuarenta, son recopilaciones de cuentos conectados por temas comunes, como los sueños, los laberintos, las bibliotecas, los espejos, los autores ficticios y la mitología europea, con argumentos que exploran ideas filosóficas relacionadas, por ejemplo, con la memoria, la eternidad, la posmodernidad y la metaficción. Las obras de Borges han contribuido ampliamente a la literatura filosófica, al género fantástico y al posestructuralismo. Según marcan numerosos críticos, el comienzo del realismo mágico en la literatura hispanoamericana del siglo XX se debe en gran parte a su obra.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 195: Durante los años sesenta, su trabajo fue traducido y publicado en los Estados Unidos y en Europa. En 1961 llegó a la fama internacional al obtener el primer Premio Formentor, que recibió junto a Samuel Beckett. En 1971 ganó el Premio Jerusalén; su reputación internacional se consolidó entre estos años, ayudado por la disponibilidad de las traducciones al inglés de su obra, por el éxito de Cien años de soledad de García Márquez y por el boom latinoamericano, aunque su participación en él es relativa.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 197: Galardonado con numerosas distinciones, fue también polémico por sus posturas políticas conservadoras; su importancia continúa siendo causa de debate, particularmente por la posibilidad de que estas le hayan impedido obtener el Premio Nobel de Literatura, al que fue candidato durante casi treinta años.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 201: Borgesilla oli ehkä jotain jutkusukulaisia. Jerusalem-palkintokin kosahti. Hitleristä ja nazeista se ei tykännyt. Sillä oli kosolti vaihtoehtoisia tosioita joihin Pynchon ja muut postmodernistit on niin ihastuneet, plus määrättömästi noita sokkeloita. Kyllähän niitä on kiva tehdä Hoblan lastensivuilla, mutta too much is too much, kuten Pirkko sanoisi.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 207: Borges toimi muun muassa englantilaisen kirjallisuuden professorina Buenos Airesin yliopistossa sekä kansalliskirjaston johtajana. Borges oli oikeistopaskiainen oikeesti. Borgesin äänekäs tuki juntalle pilasi hänen maineensa eurooppalaisten intellektuellien keskuudessa, ja on arveltu sen vieneen häneltä mahdollisuudet Nobelin palkintoon. Elämänsä viimeiset vuosikymmenet (55v eteenpäin) hän oli sokea.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 219: So what did I do? I chose to remember that Borges is not a writer of the era of Facebook and autofiction; that it is not true that he hides in his texts, speaks little about himself (in fact, the opposite is true: how often in his work does his double appear, the character called Borges?); he simply does not do it the way in which we are accustomed today; that, like his friend Alfonso Reyes, Borges learned the classical notion of decorum, which is a set of rules of style when writing and also a certain principle of discretion, an obligation not to say absolutely everything that is very likely inconceivable to many people today.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 223: And then I talked a little about what interests me most about Borges: his imagination, his problematic but in the end (or in his best moments) rebellious relationship with power and violence, what he still has to say about reading, tradition, the way in which we create (or he created for us) images of the world, models, ideologies.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 227: But the truths that can be glimpsed in Borges’s work are not derived from the morbid attractions that matter so much to us now. They are elsewhere, and their time to disappear has not arrived, even as they seem distant from those things that obsess us.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 249: Strepsiades palaa Ajatushautomoon noutamaan poikaansa. Feidippides on muuttunut kalpeaksi nössöksi ja älyköksi, jollaiseksi aiemmin pelkäsi tulevansa. Sen kämmenet on karvaiset kuin Robert Crumbilla. Kuoro hipsii pois paikalta.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 284: obert-crumb.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 295: Kuus-seiskytluvun hipit oli toxisia sovinisteja, esim ne Crumbin hirmu isoperseiset ja tissiset pitkätukkaiset bändäriämmät jotka imi sitä ja istui sen naamalla. Robert Crumb s. 1948 on nyt puhtoinen vanha mies 73 vee tyhmä golfinpelaajan lakki päässä. Niin kuin me kaikki katoamme kerran.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 314: Alpdrücken — (Alp, Incubus) ist jener allbekannte krankhafte Traumzustand, der sich nur des Nachts im Schlafe einstellt, mit dem beängstigenden Gefühle einer auf die Brust springenden oder bereits aufliegenden Last, wobei der Gequälte zu ersticken meint, und… …
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 326: St. Augustine touched on the topic in De Civitate Dei ("The City of God"); he had too many alleged attacks by incubi to deny them. He stated "There is also a very general rumor. Many friends of mine have verified it by their own experience and trustworthy persons have corroborated the experience others told, that sylvans and fauns, commonly called incubi, have often made wicked assaults upon women, and as succubi are known to suck on certain men as well."
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 336: According to the Malleus Maleficarum, exorcism is one of the five ways to overcome the attacks of incubi, the others being Sacramental Confession, the Sign of the Cross (or recital of the Angelic Salutation), moving the afflicted to another location, and by excommunication of the attacking entity, "which is perhaps the same as exorcism". On the other hand, the Franciscan friar Ludovico Maria Sinistrari stated that incubi "do not obey exorcists, have no dread of exorcisms, show no reverence for holy things, at the approach of which they are not in the least overawed".
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 345: „Da wurde er schläfrig und legte sich nieder zum Schlafe. Als er aber nur ein wenig geschlafen hatte, schrie er auf und sagte, dass ihn eine Mahre trete. Da kamen seine Leute herbei und wollten ihm helfen. Als sie ihn aber oben am Kopfe fassten, trat jene auf seine Beine, dass sie fast zerbrachen. Sie griffen nun nach seinen Füßen, doch die Mahre drückte jetzt so auf sein Haupt, dass er dort sterben musste.“
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 362: 1899 verlobte er sich mit Christoph Blumhardts Tochter Salome. Die Hochzeit mit Salome Blumhardt fand in Shanghai am 7. Mai 1900 statt. Aus dieser Ehe gingen vier Söhne hervor, die alle in Tsingtau geboren wurden: Siegfried, Manfred, Hellmut und Walt. (Täähän on Wilho Pylkkäsen onnekkaampi kolleega, pääsi olutlähettilääxi kaljatehdaskaupunkiin.) Bereits 1908 reiste Richard Wilhelm zum zweiten Mal nach China (meniköhän Wilhon kanssa samalla laivalla?).
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 394: Die Eingängigkeit der Refrainzeile forderte schon bald zu Parodie und Travestie heraus; so erhielt z. B. 1927 ein Stummfilm „Wochenendzauber“ den Unter-Titel „Ich hab mein Herz in Kritzendorf verloren“; zwei Jahre später trug ein anderer den Titel „Ich hab mein Herz im Autobus verloren“.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 456: 6 Vrt. SpermaInfektion Tihkukumarrus siv. 534—Osbie Skrobaa'n valkokangaspeli Huumeilijan Ahneus:
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 555: Berlin's songs have reached the top of the charts 25 times and have been extensively re-recorded by numerous singers including The Andrews Sisters, Perry Como, Eddie Fisher, Al Jolson, Fred Astaire, Ethel Merman, Louis Armstrong, Frank Sinatra, Dean Martin, Elvis Presley, Judy Garland, Tiny Tim, Barbra Streisand, Linda Ronstadt, Rosemary Clooney, Cher, Diana Ross, Bing Crosby, Sarah Vaughan, Ruth Etting, Fanny Brice, Marilyn Miller, Rudy Vallée, Nat King Cole, Billie Holiday, Doris Day, Jerry Garcia, Willie Nelson, Bob Dylan, Leonard Cohen, Ella Fitzgerald, Michael Buble, Lady Gaga, and Christina Aguilera.
xxx/ellauri068.html on line 584: obile164100642/4622507707-ci102l-w1024/Nazi-war-criminal-Albert-Speer-during-trial-at-Nuremberg-1945-left-and-after-h.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 79: Schestows Gedanken bilden auf den ersten Blick alles andere als eine Philosophie: Sie bilden keine systematische Einheit, kein kohärentes System von Aussagen, keine theoretische Erklärung philosophischer Probleme. Ein Großteil von Schestows Werk ist fragmentarisch, sowohl in Bezug auf die Form (er benutzte oft Aphorismen) als auch in Bezug auf Stil und Inhalt. Schestow scheint sich selbst häufig zu widersprechen, das Paradoxe sogar zu suchen.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 81: Dies kommt daher, dass Schestow das Leben selbst als letztendlich in höchstem Maße paradox ansieht. Er hält es für mit Hilfe von Logik oder Vernunft nicht erfassbar. Keine Theorie könne die Geheimnisse des Lebens ergründen. Schestows Philosophie ist nicht „problemlösend“, sondern wirft Probleme auf und versucht, das Leben so rätselhaft wie möglich erscheinen zu lassen. Schestows Philosophie geht nicht von einer Idee, sondern von einer Erfahrung aus.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 106: Dès 1895, paraissent, non signés, ses premiers textes littéraires et philosophiques : « Le Problème de la conscience (à propos de Vladimir Soloviev) » et « Georg Brandes sur Hamlet ». C'est aussi l'année d'une crise morale et d'une dépression nerveuse. L'année suivante, il part en Suisse à Genève pour s'y soigner, travaillant à son premier livre, Shakespeare et son critique Brandès, qui paraît en 1898, à Saint-Pétersbourg chez A. Mendeleïevitch, à compte d'auteur et sous le pseudonyme de Lev Chestov. Le livre passe quasiment inaperçu.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 114: En 1917, pendant la Révolution d'Octobre, il ne partage pas l'enthousiasme général ; son fils Sergueï Listopadov meurt au combat.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 120: Lev Isaakovich Shestov (Russian: Лев Исаа́кович Шесто́в; 31 January [O.S. 13 February] 1866 – 19 November 1938), born Yehuda Leib Shvartsman (Russian: Иегуда Лейб Шварцман), was a Russian existentialist and religious philosopher. He is best known for his critiques of both philosophic rationalism and positivism. His work advocated a movement beyond reason and metaphysics, arguing that these are incapable of conclusively establishing truth about ultimate problems, including the nature of God or existence. Contemporary scholars have associated his work with the label "anti-philosophy.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 151: He developed his thinking in a second book on Fyodor Dostoyevsky and Frederich Nietzsche, which increased Shestov's reputation as an original and incisive thinker. In All Things Are Possible (published in 1905) Shestov adopted the aphoristic style of Friedrich Nietzsche to investigate the difference between Russian and European Literature. Although on the surface it is an exploration of numerous intellectual topics, at its base it is a sardonic work of Existentialist philosophy which both criticizes and satirizes our fundamental attitudes towards life situations. D.H. Lawrence, who wrote the Foreword to S.S. Koteliansky's literary translation of the work, summarized Shestov's philosophy with the words: " 'Everything is possible' - this is his really central cry. It is not nihilism. It is only a shaking free of the human psyche from old bonds. The positive central idea is that the human psyche, or soul, really believes in itself, and in nothing else". Shestov deals with key issues such as religion, rationalism, and science in this highly approachable work, topics he would also examine in later writings such as In Job's Balances. Shestov's own key quote from this work is probably the following: "...we need to think that only one assertion has or can have any objective reality: that nothing on earth is impossible. Every time someone wants to force us to admit that there are other, more limited and limiting truths, we must resist with every means we can lay hands on".
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 159: The discovery of Kierkegaard prompted Shestov to realise that his philosophy shared great similarities, such as his rejection of idealism, and his belief that man can gain ultimate knowledge through ungrounded subjective thought rather than objective reason and verifiability. However, Shestov maintained that Kierkegaard did not pursue this line of thought far enough, and continued where he thought the Dane left off.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 168: Despite his weakening condition Shestov continued to write at a quick pace, and finally completed his magnum opus, Athens and Jerusalem. This work examines the dichotomy between freedom and reason, and argues that reason be rejected in the discipline of philosophy. Furthermore, it adumbrates the means by which the scientific method has made philosophy and science irreconcilable, since science concerns itself with empirical observation, whereas (so Shestov argues) philosophy must be concerned with freedom, God and immortality, issues that cannot be solved by science.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 170: Ettei vaan tullut hutiloitua loppukiireissä. Vanhaa tuttua totuuden kaksoisstandardia, alternatiivia totuutta, hämärämiesten viimeisiä hämähäkinseittejä. Näitä kaxineuvoisia oli aikanaan tosi paljon, esim se Maeterlinck, ja se Monodin häiskä, Bergson mitälie nyt olikaan. Käytetään kallon vasenta loobia arkena ja oikeata pyhänä. Mihinkähän kuolettavaan tautiin Sestofilt lopulta sairastui kesämökillä, varmaan kuppa. Sestofiltin versio Faithista on aika lailla Wallun huumehörhöilyn kuulosta.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 188: "He was the philosopher of my generation, which didn't succeed in realizing itself spiritually, but remained nostalgic about such a realization. Shestov [...] has played an important role in my life. [...] He thought rightly that the true problems escape the philosophers. What else do they do but obscuring the real torments of life?" (Emil Cioran: Oeuvres, Gallimard, Paris 1995, p. 1740, my translation (kuka oon tää 'mä?')]
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 196: According to Michael Richardson's research on Georges Bataille, Shestov was an early influence on Bataille and was responsible for exposing him to Nietzsche. He argues that Shestov's radical views on theology and an interest in extreme human behavior probably coloured Bataille's own thoughts.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 203: Lefa Struzikin oli Saku Palkeen kolleega Chicagossa. Siellä oli aivan hemmetinmoinen ampiaispesä ilkeitä talousliberaalifasisteja, 13 talousnobelistia päättyen roistomaiseen Milton Friedmaniin. Valtaosa varmaan oli imigranttijutkuja.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 205: Leo Strauss (/straʊs/;[30] German: [ˈleːo ˈʃtʁaʊs];[31][32] September 20, 1899 – October 18, 1973) was a German-American political philosopher and classicist who specialized in classical political philosophy. Born in Germany to Jewish parents, Strauss later emigrated from Germany to the United States. He spent much of his career as a professor of political science at the University of Chicago, where he taught several generations of students and published fifteen books.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 207: Trained in the neo-Kantian tradition with Ernst Cassirer and immersed in the work of the phenomenologists Edmund Husserl and Martin Heidegger, Strauss established his fame with path-breaking books on Spinoza and Hobbes, then with articles on Maimonides and Farabi. In the late 1930s his research focused on the rediscovery of esoteric writing, thereby a new illumination of Plato and Aristotle, retracing their interpretation through medieval Islamic and Jewish philosophy, and encouraging the application of those ideas to contemporary political theory.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 209: According to Allan Bloom's 1974 obituary in Political Theory, Strauss "was raised as an Orthodox Jew", but the family does not appear to have completely embraced Orthodox practice.[35] Strauss himself noted that he came from a "conservative, even orthodox Jewish home", but one which knew little about Judaism except strict adherence to ceremonial laws. His father and uncle operated a farm supply and livestock business that they inherited from their father, Meyer (1835–1919), a leading member of the local Jewish community.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 213: Mournful Walttu Benjamin teki suikin, se löytyy Suikkasista. Ja täältä. Lefan paras kaveri oli sen opiskelukaveri Husserlin ja Heideggerin kursseilta Freiburgissa, Jakob 'Jascha' Klein.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 303: Friedrich Konrad Eduard Wilhelm Ludwig Klages (10 December 1872 – 29 July 1956) was a German philosopher, psychologist, graphologist, poet, writer, and lecturer, who was a two-time nominee for the Nobel Prize in Literature. In the (rather odious) Germanosphere, he is considered one of the most important thinkers of the 20th century.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 344: Vittu tätä iänikuista pyhitystä. kuka sitä kaipaa, en minä ainakaan. Muka radikaalia vapautta, maaorjuus vaan vaihdettiin tehdastyön kahleisiin. (Nyt sen sijaan on tullut mitääntekemättömyys. Vielä radikaalimpaa vapautta. Sysselsättningin puute on 2000-luvun hurja probleema.)
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 462: When asked in an interview in 2002 whether he was gay, Ellis explained that he did not identify as gay or straight but was comfortable being thought of as homosexual, bisexual or heterosexual and enjoyed playing with his persona, identifying variously as gay, straight and bisexual to different people over the years. In a 1999 interview, Ellis suggested that his reluctance to definitively label his sexuality was for "artistic reasons", "if people knew that I was straight, they'd read [my books] in a different way. If they knew I was gay, 'Psycho' would be read as a different book." In an interview with Robert F. Coleman, Ellis said he had an "indeterminate sexuality", that "any other interviewer out there will get a different answer and it just depends on the mood I am in". Mod tai ei, aikaa myöden Bretistä paljaatui ihan tavallinen hintti. Siinä se muistuttaa toista pahan apostolia Herman Melvilleä, joita Pippa Fitz-Aamobi päätti vertailla ylioppilasaineessa.
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 474: A few years later, Wallace laid into “American Psycho” in an interview with Larry McCaffery, saying it “panders shamelessly to the audience’s sadism for a while, but by the end it’s clear that the sadism’s real object is the reader itself… You can defend ‘Psycho’ as being a sort of performative digest of late-eighties social problems, but it’s no more than that.”
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 479: “They mouth, off, in the process,” she continues, “making themselves look ridiculous and just a tad obsessed with their targets.”
xxx/ellauri075.html on line 565: Hoblan oikeistokommentaattori Juri Bonsdorff näyttää erehdyttävästi kauluspaidasta ja kavaijista nousevalta huolestuneelta kyrvänpäältä. Nyze vekuttaa ryppyozaisesti siitä että Biden on lähtenyt vasemmiston tielle: se on lopettanut muurin rakentamisen, se on kieltänyt kaupalliset yxityisvankilat, se on liittänyt Amerikan takaisin WHO:hon ja Pariisin ilmastosopimuxeen. Se antaa rahaa Aahrikkaan neekerisiköiden lähdettämiseen ja päästää transut takas urheiden poikiemme joukkoon. Yrittääkö se tässä hamuilla ehkä tukea Antifasta niinkuin Trump Proud Boyseista, aprikoi Juripoika. Näitä ja muita Bidenin vasemmiston lastentauteja tukee iso enemmistö USAn äänestäjistä, siis rebublikaaneja on mukana. Mutta eihän sitten tule mitään Bidenin tärkeimmästä lupauxesta, että USAn 2 kokoomuspuoluetta vetäis yhtä köyttä pääasiasta, eli talousliberalistisen kapitalismin pyhistä arvoista? Palauttas Ameerikan unelman takaisin kunniaan? Make America truly great again? Voi helvetti, vedä kuule Juri se terska takaisin sinne bleiserin esinahkan sisään.
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 61: After two-and-a-half years of inactivity, Neil suddenly announced in September 2018 that Mötley Crüe had reunited and was working on new material. On March 22, 2019, the band released four new songs on the soundtrack for its Netflix biopic The Dirt, based on the band's New York Times best-selling autobiography. In 2023 they appeared at Hyvinkää Rockfest.
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 129: Kajanus was born in Trondheim, Norway, to Prince Pavel [also Paulo] Tjegodiev of Russia and Johanna Kajanus, a French-Finnish sculptress, bronze medal winner for sculpture at the Exposition Internationale des Arts et Techniques dans la Vie Moderne (1937), and granddaughter of Robert Kajanus, the Finnish composer, conductor, champion of Sibelius and founder of the Helsinki Philharmonic Orchestra. He is the brother of the late actress and film-maker Eva Norvind and the uncle to Mexican theater and television actress Nailea Norvind.
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 203: Girls! Girls! Girls! is a 1962 Golden Globe-nominated American musical comedy film starring Elvis Presley as a penniless Hawaiian fisherman who loves his life on the sea and dreams of owning his own boat. "Return to Sender", which reached No. 2 on the Billboard pop singles chart, is featured in the film. The film opened at #1 on the Variety box office chart and finished the year at #19 on the year-end list of the top-grossing films of 1962. The film earned $2.6 million at the box office.
xxx/ellauri076.html on line 472: Niklas Lindola, Karleby samskolan alumni ja ex-Nokian Puolan kamasaxa, nykyinen jonkun energiatiilen kauppamies, näyttää ämmille ja mamuille ihonväristä fäkkiä Hoblan insändare-kolumnissa. Se kaivaa sillä verta nenästään intersektionaalisten feministien kustannuxella täyysin ennustettavasti pelaten naiivilla tiedeuskolla ja vielä naiivimmalla peliteoreettisella talousliberalismilla. Jokainen saa ize valita onko rasisti, se on vaan sen izensä asia. Kaikki lähtevät samasta lähtöruudusta, siitä pikku Niklaskin lähti aikanaan Karleby samskolasta. Ja näin pitkälle se on jo harpponut! Pieni valkoinen sateenvarjo suojaa sitä mutiaisten ja ämmäköörin vihalta.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 72: obrasantateresaemxtase-bernini-141207150242-conversion-gate02/95/filme-anjos-e-demnios-obra-santa-teresa-em-xtase-bernini-4-638.jpg?cb=1417964622" height="250px" />
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 112: Wallun persepäisyys näkyy siitäkin, että sen herot lukee toisillensa William Blakea. Blake oli suuri sekobolzi sekin.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 238: Oulunkylän kierrätyskeskuxesta löytyi Panun pääteos "Lavatähti ja kirjamies" paperikantisena sopuhinnalla, 0 eurolla. Taskuunmahtuvampi kuin tämän Suomen luetuimman elämäkerturin ja elämäntapapyllynnuolijan muut opuxet. Siinä vanha norssi hienovaraisesti vittuilee Tohmajärven tytölle joka rajaa silmänsäkin sinisellä ja laulaa kireällä eellä. Tohmajärvi on kunta aivan rajan pinnassa Pohjois-Karjalassa, tuolla Tuupovaarassa. No ei, Tuupovaara on nyttemmin Joen kaupungin kaupunginosa. Katri-Helena muistuttaa Calvinia ja Hobbesia, Yeazeja ja Browningeja siinä, että se uskoo keskusteluun vainajien kanssa ouija-laudalla. Kaikki on ennalta määrättyä, jopa Panun kosinta. Katrin edellinen norssi oli Fisu eli Timo Kalaoja, Panun luokkatoveri useammassakkn sanan mielessä. Eikös senniminen ollut meidänkin luokalla, lihava kaveri joka lopetti keskikoulusta ja lähti ajamaan jotain jakeluautoa? Sillä oli kai päässyt palamaan puuro pohjaan tai jotain sellasta. Eikun se oli Kalajoki. No lähellä. Timo oli tunari, ei osannut sorvata edes pianonjalkoja. Sen virma meni konkurssiin, Timo kuoli ja Katri jäi maxelemaan konkurssivelkoja. Siinä oli Katrin tiukasta yläviivasta paljon apua. Katri asui ensin Polakassa Hyväskylässä, sitten Ponun luona Hämeenkyrössä ja nyttemmin Liimataisen kanssa Askolassa, ellei Tommi ole kuollut tai Katri eronnut.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 269: Robert F./Bob Death asks Gately if by any chance he’s heard the one about the fish. Glenn K. in his fucking robe overhears, and of course he’s got to put his own oar in, and breaks in and asks them all if they’ve heard the one What did the blind man say as he passed by the Quincy Market fish-stall, and without waiting says He goes “Evening, Ladies.” A couple male White Flaggers fall about, and Tamara N. slaps at the back of Glenn K.’s head’s pointy hood, but without real heat, as in like what are you going to do with this sick fuck?
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 273: Bob Death smiles coolly (South Shore bikers are required to be extremely cool in everything they do) and manipulates a wooden match with his lip and says No, not that fish-one. He has to assume a kind of bar-shout to clear the noise of his idling hawg. He leans in more toward Gately and shouts that the one he was talking about was: This wise old whiskery fish swims up to three young fish and goes, “Morning, boys, how’s the water?” and swims away; and the three young fish watch him swim away and look at each other and go, “What the fuck is water?” and swim away. The young biker leans back and smiles at Gately and gives an affable shruge and blatts away, a halter top’s tits mashed against his back.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 309: Maurice Le Noblet Duplessis QC (French pronunciation: [dyplɛsi]; 20 April 1890 – 7 September 1959) served as the 16th Premier of the Canadian province of Quebec from 1936 to 1939 and 1944 to 1959.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 351: Väsyttää nää Wallun tennisjorinat. Mä en pidä junnuista siis urheilevista pojista. Ne haisee inherentisti runkulle, sukkamehulle ja myskinhajuisille dödöille. Ne päästää puolivillaiselta kuuluvia soturiääniä. En pidä urheilumölähdyxistä, ne on epämääräisesti uhkaavan eläinmäisiä. Junnuja oli myös Liukkosen homostelukirjassa O kuin pyllynreikä. Tää on varmaan homofobiaa. Kuten amfibilla Olli Saxikädellä. Mitähän paljastuxia mustakin kexittäs postuumisti jos oisin julkumpi. Mut onnexoon vaan kuin tää C. Tavis joka oli bylsinyt sisarpuoleensa Apriliin ton S-kätisen Marion. Aprillia aprillia juo kuravettä ja syö silliä. Ens aprillina Jönsy täyttää 70v. Erittäin hyväkuntoisessa vanhassa miehessä on jotain epämiellyttävää. (Tämä ei todellakaan tarkoita Jönsyä, ompahan vaan wallusitaatti.)
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 367: As the September/October 2019 issue of Tennis Industry magazine was ready to go to press, we learned the sad news that tennis industry legend Dennis Van der Meer passed away on July 27, after a lengthy illness. No one has had a bigger impact on recreational tennis and tennis coaches than Dennis.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 511: His radio and television programs, popular from 1932 until his death in 1974, were a major influence on the sitcom genre. Benny often portrayed his character as a miser who obliviously played his violin badly and ridiculously claimed to be 39 years of age, regardless of his actual age.
xxx/ellauri081.html on line 525: While in a coma, he was visited by close friends including George Burns, Bob Hope, Frank Sinatra, Johnny Carson, John Rowles and then Governor Ronald Reagan.
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 36: Both Hitler's oratory and Wittgenstein's philosophy of language derive from the hermetic tradition, the key to which is Wittgenstein's "no-ownership" theory of mind, described by P. F. Strawson in his book Individuals (1958). The no-ownership theory is a metaphysical doctrine of the self, labelled by Strawson. It arises from cartesian mind-body dualism (see mind body problem) and maintains that conscious experiences with a subject cannot be said to ‘belong’ to that subject, because “Only those things whose ownership is logically transferable can be owned at all“. Kauppamiesmäistä mind-body kapitalismia. Taas yxi kiemurtelu sielun irrottamisexi ruumiista.
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 86: 28.3.2017.Ampuma-asedirektiivin uudistamisesta 1-5 (loputonta vekutusta pumppuhaulikoista) 11.3.2015.Vielä ö-luokan ehdokkaista (mamuvaaliehdokkaat ovat sekundaa) 3.3.2015. Hirveä työvoimapula (mamut on työllistämiskelvottomia ja/tai laiskiaisia) 9.2.2015. Muutama sana Pariisista (Islaminvastaista veistelyä Charlie Hebdosta) 8.1.2015. Ihmisoikeudet uhattuna länsinaapurissa (Pakolaiset ovat röyhkeitä ja nirsoja), 3.1.2015. 6.11.2014. Rajaseudun rahastajasta ja kompensatorisesta etiikasta (En tiedä, minkä lakipykälän mukaan rasismi olisi rikos), 11.9.2014. Rikkautta, jolla on arvoa (Olen kade somaleille), 23.8.2014.Uskonto uskontojen joukossa (Ellet rukoile, olet pahempi kuin kafferi), 19.5.2014.Kysymys kunnallisesta mamubisneksestä, 24.4.2014.Kommentti kehysriiheen ja Ylen toimintaan, 26.3.2014.Unionin tulevasta ampuma-asepolitiikasta, 10.3.2014. [Päivitys 17.3.!]Kirjallinen kysymys äärisaarnaajista Suomessa, 7.3.2014.Kirjallinen kysymys Ukrainan tapahtumiin liittyen, 4.3.2014.Lieksalainen ikiliikkuja, 18.2.2014.Lieksa käsirysyn partaalla, 10.2.2014. [Lisäys 12.2.2014!]EU, maahanmuutto, taakanjako, 16.1.2014.Toimeentuloperäistä maahanmuuttoa, 9.12.2013.Kuntarakenneuudistus eli kaksikielisyyttä saranapuolelta, 28.11.2013.Puheenvuoro asevelvollisuudesta, 15.11.2013.Kiihottamisesta ja kansainvälisistä sitoumuksista, 25.10.2013.Kirjallinen kysymys epäterveistä vetovoimatekijäistä, 7.10.2013.Pakolaiskiintiän kasvattaminen revisited, 30.9.2013.Kirjallinen kysymys pakolaiskiintiän kasvattamisesta, 20.9.2013.Luottamus Kataiseen ja Himaseen, 19.9.2013.Kaksi lakialoitetta sananvapauden edistämiseksi, 10.9.2013.Kansalaisaloite pakkoruotsista luopumiseksi, 15.8.2013.Kirkko, kaupunki ja moskeija, 13.8.2013.Lisääntykää ja täyttäkää Toyota Corolla!, 8.8.2013.Majoituspalveluja kerjäläisille, 5.6.2013.Husbyn herättämiä ajatuksia, 23.5.2013.Paperittomien terveyspalvelut Helsingissä, 7.5.2013.Sosialidemokratiasta ja islamismista, 3.5.2013.Puheenvuoro Kyproksen pelastuspakettiin 17.4. 2013, 18.4.2013.Kirjallinen kysymys opettajien toimintaedellytyksistä, 8.4.2013.Muutamia ilmoituksia, 5.4.2013.Helsingin johtajiston palkankorotuksista, osa 2, 12.3.2013.Suomen Sisun suurkäräjät 10.3.2013, 11.3.2013.Aseaiheisia lakialoitteita, 15.2.2013.Jyväskylästä, 6.2.2013.Connecticut, Yhdysvallat, aseet, 18.12.2012.Sisäministeriön linjaukset aselain uudistamiseksi, 5.12.2012.Kysymys uskontojen halventamisesta, 30.11.2012.Milloin kotoutus on onnistunut?, 1.11.2012.Rikoksiin syyllistyneiden karkottamisesta, 22.10.2012.Helsinki ja "Globaalin vastuun strategia", 28.9.2012.Kirjallinen kysymys somalien suojeluntarpeesta, 22.8.2012.Etninen syrjintä rekrytoinnissa, 21.8.2012.Avoimia vastauksia Meri Valkamalle, 4.6.2012.Hyvinkäästä, 30.5.2012.Kreikkalaisia näkymiä, 10.5.2012.Maahanmuuttajien työllistymisestä, 1.4.2012.Miksi pahis palkitaan?, 26.3.2012.Homoseksuaalisuus suojeluperusteena, 25.2.2012.Matka Addis Abebaan, 17.1.2012.On rotumme synkkä ja siksi jää, 13.1.2012.Mitä tehdä rattijuopoille?, 11.1.2012.Hyvää uutta vuotta 2012!, 8.12.2011.Tilastoista ja etnopositiivisuudesta, 26.10.2011.Rasismin kitkentää Vaasassa, 3.10.2011.Muutama ajatus kunniaväkivallasta, 30.9.2011.Ottawan sopimuksesta, 6.9.2011.Loikka, 13.8.2011.Viharikoksista ja mediasta,
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 115: Yksi asia, jonka olen oppinut isojen poikien lounasseminaareissa Brysselissä, on se, että kansainväliset sijoittajat pitävät Suomea korkean maariskin kohteena. Lainsäädäntö on heikkolaatuista, poukkoilevaa ja epäennustettavaa. Maksuja, veroja ja sääntelyä tulee puskasta, niiden vaikutusarvioinnit ovat ideologisia eivätkä objektiivisia, ne saatetaan peruuttaa seuraavana vuonna, ja ne voidaan kaivaa uudelleen naftaliinista seuraavan hallituskauden aikana. Yritystoimintaan sijoittaminen on pitkäjänteistä puuhaa, ja rahansa likoon paneva investori haluaa tietää, että sijoituspäätökseen vaikuttaneet olosuhteet ja ehdot ovat voimassa myös kymmenen vuoden kuluttua.
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 255: Hanuman on monen hindun suosikkijumala. Hanumanin papit ovat vaishnalaisia, mutta myös moni shaivalainen pitää häntä suosikkijumalanaan. Hanuman on erityisesti painijoiden ja akrobaattien suojelija. Hanuman selvittää pulmatilanteet, ja hänen apuaan etsivät usein näyttelijät, ohjaajat, asianajajat ja luennoitsijat. Myös matkaajat pysähtyvät maanteiden varsilla oleviin pieniin Hanumanin temppeleihin pyytämään apua matkanteossa.
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 260: Wallu hei, oma naamas on kuin apinan hanurista! Bob Hope teki Wallusta läskin velton kostean ja kalpean.
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 389: Quora Akateeminen ja Opettaja-Akatemia-Opisto ja Yliopisto Opettajakunta-Työ Jobit ja Urat
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 502: Palkinnot (Nobel, Wolf, Fields, etc.)
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 594: Film critic André Bazin (1918-1958) is notable for arguing that realism is the most important function of cinema. His call for objective reality, deep focus, and lack of montage are linked to his belief that the interpretation of a film or scene should be left to the spectator. This placed him in opposition to film theory of the 1920s and 1930s, which emphasized how the cinema could manipulate reality.
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 603: Iskä Gottlieb ja isoiskä Daniel Pyllyverhoilija oli puoliepäilyttäviä pastoreita jossain harppisakuissa. Ei siis ihme että Friedrich läxi teit isäin astumaan. Kohtalokkaasti se jätti vanhan testamentin kielet väliin ja keskittyi vaan uuteen. Sixi se alkoi sotkea kristinuskon soppaan Plaattoa ja myöhemmin Kanttia ja Jacobia ja vielä myöhemmin vielä Spinozaa. Friedrichille ei pietismi riittänyt, vaan se halus järkeillä. Siitä ehti tulla aika skeptikko. Oli vuoronperään professori Hallessa ja pastorina tuppukylissä. Pyllyverhoilija juuniorin paras kaveri oli Aku Schlegel, joka on ohimennen mainittu Puckin ja Oberonin diggaajana. Schlegel ja Schleiermacher oli parantumattomia romantikkoja. Vaikka pyllyverhomies ei ollut vakuuttunut Jee-suxen jumaluudesta, se jaxoi kuitenkin peukuttaa sielun kuolemattomuutta ja muuta siihen liittyvää perusmystikkaa. Sen jutut oli sekametelisoppa ateismia, pietismiä ja Spinozaa. Sen ura lähti heittelehtimään Napsun jälkeisen kurinpalautuxen aikana, sen edustamasta liberaaliteologiasta ei oltu innoissaan johtoportaassa.
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 684: Kolme poikaani (My Three Sons) on yhdysvaltalainen televisiosarja, jota tuotettiin 12 tuotantokautta vuodesta 1960 vuoteen 1972. Sen pääosaa, leskeksi jäänyttä lentokoneinsinööriä ja kolmen pojan yksinhuoltajaisää Steven Douglasia esittää Fred MacMurray. Hänen alkuperäiset kolme poikaansa ovat college-opiskelija Mike (Tim Considine), high schoolia käyvä Robbie (Don Grady) ja kuopus Chip (Stanley Livingston).
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 773: In France, after its release, communists, socialists, and "independent groups" treated the film favorably; however, the far right disapproved on account of the director's background. Some French critics denounced the film as unpatriotic. The film has also been criticized for being too selective and that the director was "too close to the events portrayed to provide an objective study of the period."
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 818: Edna St. Vincent Millay (February 22, 1892 – October 19, 1950) was an American lyrical poet and playwright.
xxx/ellauri084.html on line 830: Susan Alexandra "Sigourney" Weaver (/ s ɪ ˈ ɡ ɔːr n i /; born October 8, 1949) is an American actress. Weaver is considered to be a pioneer of action heroines in science fiction films. She is known for her role as Ellen Ripley which earned her an Academy Award nomination in 1986 and is often regarded as one of the most significant female protagonists in cinema history. Her most famous co-star was the Alien.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 104: Olla podrida (/ˌɒlə poʊˈdriːdə, - pəˈ-/,[1] also UK: /- pɒˈ-/,[2] US: /ˌɔɪə pəˈ-/,[3] Spanish: [ˈoʎa poˈðɾiða]; literally "rotten pot", although podrida is probably a version of the original word poderida, so it could be translated as "powerful pot") is a Spanish stew, usually made with chickpeas or beans, and assorted meats like pork, beef, bacon, partridge, chicken, ham, sausage, and vegetables such as carrots, leeks, cabbage, potatoes and onions.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 106: If it is a surprise to learn that Lawrence originally conceived of Women in Love as a money-making pot-boiler, it comes as an endearing shock to read that James Joyce submitted some of his early work to the firm of Mills and Boon. There is no record of the reader’s report, beyond the fact that he rejected Dubliners as unsuitable material for the unique imprint of that publishing house. For his part, Lawrence had no doubt that the author of Ulysses was the real smutmonger of modern fiction. ‘My God, what a clumsy olla putrida James Joyce is!’, he wrote to Aldous Huxley, ‘nothing but old fags and cabbage-stumps of quotations from the Bible and the rest stewed in the juice of deliberate journalistic dirty-mindedness.’ To his wife Frieda he wrote, after reading Ulysses, that ‘the last part of it is the dirtiest, most indecent, obscene thing ever written’; and he later complained that Joyce had degraded the novel to the level of an instrument for measuring twinges in the toes of unremarkable men. Joyce’s reply to the charge that he was just another pornographer doing dirt on sex was to claim that at least he had never made the subject predictable or boring. He denounced Lady Chatterbox’s Lover — his title for Lawrence’s notorious novel — as a ‘lush’ production in ‘sloppy English’ and dismissed its ending as ‘a piece of propaganda in favour of something which, outside of DHL’s country at any rate, makes all the propaganda for itself’. It is a minor irony of literary history that both men were married at Kensington Register Office in London, although, unlike Lawrence, the Irishman allowed a decent interval of twenty-five years to elapse before the solemnisation of his nuptials.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 131: Many references to the female nude and the way it is represented in our visual culture. (painting, photography, film etc) The female seen almost always as the object and the male as the subject.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 133: When the eyeball falls out of the male protagonist’s head, i personally believe that the filmmaker wants to emphasize to the viewer the fact that we don’t necessarily “see” and perceive the world around us only as individuals but rather as a collective self. The way we perceive objects, people, the world around us in general is partly shaped by society and it’s rules. We have been taught how to look at life…
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 144: I made a lot of mistakes in life. I am 49 and I am studying computer science now. Can I get a job?
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 177: In one of the more disturbing case histories in the novel, a stable father/husband begins obsessing over the television program M*A*S*H (taking meticulous and incoherent notes), gradually losing his mind speaking only in cryptic references to M*A*S*H and sending letters to the characters, not the actors!
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 211: I feel like a lot of people have covered the ugly and probably the truest way of getting through it all. Alcohol, meds or marrying into a rich family so you can kick your fe... Read More »
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 214: And you’ll probably start nodding off because the work is so boring,
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 215: You’ll probably fall asleep multiple times on your desk because of how freaken boring the work is, and you up to your coffee consumption so your manager doesn’t see you falling asleep.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 217: Plus, since I am Asian, leaving my job is pretty scary because that was my parent’s bragging card in yumcha with aunties and uncles. Yum cha is the Cantonese tradition of brunch involving Chinese tea and dim sum. So yea I get it.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 225: So this brings me to my first point, finding a job or another workplace or something that you enjoy and CAN GET PAID FOR IT.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 231: How can you even spend time thinking about the person you want to be when all you can think about is how shit this job is?
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 256: At this level almost all the responsibility will probably end up on them because they are the highest in the hierarchy. However that doesn't mean they put forth the most effort. Not by far.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 259: Most people's minds are trying to answer problems even when they're supposed to be resting. What's the difference between them and the little guy? Often not much other than their grandiose sense of self worth very commonly found in type A personalities.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 291: When asked in September 2016 if he would comply with the request of a student to use a preferred pronoun, Peterson said "it would depend on how they asked me.… If I could detect that there was a chip on their shoulder, or that they were [asking me] with political motives, then I would probably say no.…
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 297: Peterson married Tammy Roberts in 1989;[10] the couple have a daughter, Mikhaila, and a son, Julian. Following Peterson's rise to fame, his daughter Mikhaila has built an online following herself and offers dietary advice of only eating meat.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 355: This has a two part answer. The first is, that it assumes that businesses are started and then expanded for the purpose of creating jobs and advancing the working class. This simply is not true. When a person opens a business, their entire purpose is to earn a profit. Not a single multimillionaire has ever said “I think we need more jobs and better wages, so I think we should open another facility.” This can be documented with the exodus of American business to coutries such as Mexico, China, and Japan, just to name a few. They were NOT trying to create jobs in those countries. They were trying to increase profits. There are any number of counties, cities, and states that are held hostage by big business demanding tax abatements and other concessions if they agree to do business and maybe create jobs in those areas. So you see, big business is not about helping the little guy…it is about how much profit they can make with a PROMISE to help the little guy.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 382: And then look at all the jobs in the country. Go to craigslist and scroll through all the help wanted. Name for me how many of those jobs, are not jobs created by wealthy people? Even the few that exist, would those jobs exist without wealthy people?
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 384: Rich people. So job, even as an independent barber, only exists because of rich people.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 386: And all jobs ‘trickle down’ from the rich.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 407: “No such theory has been found in even the most voluminous and learned histories of economic theories, including J.A. Schumpeter’s monumental 1,260-page History of Economic Analysis. Yet this non-existent theory* has become the object of denunciations from the pages of the New York Times and the Washington Post to the political arena. It has been attacked by Professor Paul Krugman of Princeton and Professor Peter Corning of Stanford, among others, and similar attacks have been repeated as far away as India. It is a classic example of arguing against a caricature instead of confronting the argument actually made.”
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 417: This process of shelling out cash, and losing money can go on FOR YEARS as it did with Amazon, and many, most, companies fail in the first 5 years and employees go on to a new job while the owners and investors are out ALL the money they put in. Employees get paid the whole time, owners get paid ONLY if there is a profit and last. Profits trickle UP, not down, last IF at all!
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 422: Do you see the difference? A bad environment reduces opportunities for everyone while a good one encourages risk taking which creates jobs AND standard of living increases, including life spans increase, etc.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 426: Another huge problem because it erects barriers to poor people starting a business is undue govt licensing training requirements to open all kinds of businesses. A high license fee is simply a barrier that stops people from doing it, and there are examples such as hair braiding requiring exorbitant fees and training. Probably big salons got the City Council to create a bs license to keep out competition. Million dollar medallion fees to the city just to run 1 taxi is another example, and rideshare tried to get around that expense and has allowed many people a 2nd income to build upon. And a 3rd and so on, work 24/7 in fact to survive. For minimum wage is a BARRIER.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 428: Other barriers are produced by govt in their speeches, it might not even be policy yet, but if for example Obama talks about raising taxes and tells business owners like Joe the Plumber that “You didn’t build that!” Then what signal does that send to would-be entrepreneurs? Probably just wait til a more friendly administration comes along. Not surprising that business activity increased toward the end of Obama’s term and really took off once people figured out that Trump was going to have policies that reduced barriers.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 445: The reality of incentive based economics is that by lowering the tax rates on future profitable activity will divert huge amounts of cash today into unproductive passive investments, and to such investments that eat away jobs and support accumulation of wealth.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 446: That is NOT cash somehow spared from today’s taxes and diverted out of anyone’s income today. It IS cash taken out of bank accounts and passive investments TODAY, in multiples many times larger than the tax reductions involved, and invested TODAY in ways that get away with jobs and higher levels of economic gain in the FUTURE; money that would have continued to sit idle and unproductive without the incentive based tax policies.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 457: Because it assumes that rich people automatically create more jobs if they have more money. This idea ignores the reason why jobs are created in the first place: to make profit. Which means that new jobs are only created if they are profitable to the employer. If all the jobs that could be created aren’t, it doesn’t matter how much money the employer has. And therefore giving the employer more money in such a situation will not lead to more jobs being created.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 459: If there are profitable jobs to be created and employers don’t have the money to start it off they could take out a loan and pay it off with the profit. There simply is no situation left where lowering the rich’s taxes would create jobs. But we don’t have to rely on this argument, we can look at the many times where this was tried and, guess what: lowering the rich’s taxes has never created more jobs.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 484: “Otherwise we would not have observed such an obscene increase in the degree of income inequality that has restored the magnitude of levels that existed on the eve of the Great Depression,” he told me.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 487: Put simply, there is no empirical evidence — none whatsoever — that trickle-down economics delivers as promised, bringing more jobs, higher pay and better conditions to millions of people.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 531: That last proposal regarding progressivity is the most important. As the rich have accumulated a greater share of the nation’s wealth, they’ve simultaneously succeeded in lowering their tax obligations.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 534: For example, Trump, while enjoying the life of a jet-setting businessman, claimed $1.17 billion in losses from 1985 to 1994, which allowed him to skip income taxes for eight of those 10 years, according to IRS tax transcripts obtained by the New York Times.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 545: But, just as many economists predicted, slashing individual, corporate and estate tax rates was mostly a windfall for big corporations and wealthy Americans. The Tax Cuts and Jobs Act did not pay for itself, failed to stimulate long-term growth and did not lead to sustained business investments.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 567: Given the evidence, why are such targeted tax cuts perennially popular among policymakers, especially Republicans? The authors point to one major reason — the power of wealthy individuals and corporations to set policy agendas through lobbying and campaign contributions.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 573: Though the pandemic cost tens of millions of Americans their jobs and sent the U.S. economy into a tailspin, many at the top of the income distribution have seen their wealth skyrocket. The nation’s 651 billionaires saw their net worth spike by more than $1 trillion during the first nine months of the pandemic, according to Americans for Tax Fairness, a liberal group advocating for higher taxes on the wealthy.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 577: Given the historically low tax burdens on the wealthy in the United States, their ability to pay for higher taxes has probably never been better.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 582: There are two prevalent theories people like to allude to, Demand Side (Keynesian) and Supply Side ( Championed bt Reagan and theorized by Laffler). Neither has worked well. They are just different approaches to solve the same problem. Sluggish economic growth. In truth, Reagan never really implemented true Trickle Down economics. His was a hybrid of tax cuts and simplification coupled with a massive increase in government spending. You see the thing is, when you have an unregulated job market and limited government employment, there will always be a segment of the population that will be out of work and large sections of the economy reinventing itself. The U.S. has reached virtually full employment since the 80’s.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 585: At this point, unless we allow millions more immigrants into our country, thereby expanding the workforce, economic growth will be sluggish. There is plenty of wealth being created, but it is often in too few hands. Government spending generally has far less velocity due to more and more people having less disposable income. The elitists in the U.S. embarked on this globalist philosophy 30–40 years ago and there has been significant economic growth worldwide, but that has been at the expense of the American worker and to some degree our way of life. The introduction of massive amounts of consumer credit has only made things worse.
xxx/ellauri085.html on line 614: Wallu puolustelee sitä että kirjassa on niin paljon pölisijöitä sillä ezeon yltiörealistista ja demokraattista. Jokainen on oman romaaninsa sankari. Valitettavasti ne näyttää kaikki puhuvan wallulatinaa. Wallun obsessiivinen äiti on tehnyt siitä tosi basillikammosen. Se ei kestä kun muut kaivaa nenää ja kazoo sitten miltä räkä näyttää. Eikö se ize sitten kazo nenäliinaan, tai edes kurkkaa pönttöön paskannuxen jälkeen? Sehän on hyvää ennaltaehkäisevää toimintaa, profylaktista hygieniaa.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 68: Nipsun postmodernismi oli sen mielestä sydämetöntä. Sori Wallu mut sellaselta tuntui tämäkin "hysteerinen realismi". Sentimentaalisuus sadismiin ja siisteysfobioihin yhdistettynä ei ole järin lämmintä.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 83: ONAN, as almost everybody knows, was killed by God for the heinous crime of "spilling his seed upon the ground". This, throughout history, has associated him with masturbation, beginning with the writings of Clement of Alexandria. And I agree, that when DFW mentions O.N.A.N., that connotation is implied. But that's not why God was mad at Onan. If you go read the whole sordid story in Genesis 38: when God killed Onan's brother, for reasons which are a bit obscure, leaving his widow childless, it was the custom that Onan was required to marry her and father a child upon her. This child would legally be his brother's. This was known as Levirate marriage. Onan didn't want any children who weren't legally his, so Onan "went in" to his brother's wife but pulled out early and "spilled his seed on the ground". So Onan's real sin was refusing to Consumate his Levirate Marriage. Now, once God whacked Onan, his widow had to wait for his remaining brother to grow up. But she got tired of waiting and put on a veil(!!!!) and tricked Onan's father into having sex with her. So a painting of the "Consummation of the Levirates" might be Onan's father banging his sons' wife....
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 176: Gamergateen liittyy toxisen naisvihan lisäxi homofobia, JK Rowlingin suosikki transfobia, antisemitismi, rasismi ja uusnazismi. Tämmöisen luumusopan vastustaminen on cancel-kulttuuria.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 195: Pitkään työn alla ollut Hogwarts Legacy sai negatiivista julkisuutta jo viime vuoden puolella, Harry Potter -kirjailija J. K. Rowlingin transfobisten kommenttien vuoksi. Rowling kirjoitti Twitterissä kesällä 2020 muun muassa, että sukupuolten olemassaolon häivyttäminen on hänen mielestään haitallista, ja että ”totuuden puhuminen ei ole vihaamista”.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 230: Smoking is not expressly forbidden anywhere in the Bible. There is a veritable who’s who list of Christians who smoked. One of the greatest preachers and evangelists of the 19th century loved his cigars. He was Charles Spurgeon. Other famous Christians who smoked or still do are J.R.R. Tolkien, C.S. Lewis, Chuck Colson, Johann Sebastian Bach, Billy Graham, and Jerry Farwell (although the last two quit in their latter years). This article has addressed all types of tobacco: cigarettes, pipe, cigar, snuff, and chewing tobacco. Come to think of it, all these famous Christians are dead. Put that in your pipe and smoke.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 249: Niklas laulaa muiden mukana "singen beten loben den Herrn", ja kun Pastor Müller nostaa kaxi kättä siunauxen merkixi, Niklaskin nostaa pikku kätensä ja sanoo "Hau". Sekin on nähnyt intiaanileffoja.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 289: Welp ei yllättynyt siitä, että Change Is Coming- teos ja video ovat saaneet myös kritiikkiä osakseen. Seura-lehden toimituspäällikkö Petri Korhonen kirjoitti tiistaina Tolkun henkilö -blogissaan videosta ehkä tavallistakin aggressiivisemmin ja epäili työryhmää jopa lobbauksesta. Suomalaiset tofuntuottajat, Ruohonjuuri-ketju ja Suomen suurin luomukauppa S-Market asialla todennäkösest. Mikähän on Gretan provika? Että kehtaakin, suloton pikkulikka.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 399: In October 2016, investigative reporter Claudio Gatti published an article jointly in Il Sole 24 Ore and Frankfurter Allgemeine Zeitung, that relied on financial records related to real estate transactions and royalties payments to draw the conclusion that Anita Raja, a Rome-based translator, is the real author behind the Ferrante pseudonym. Gatti's article was criticized by many in the literary world as a violation of privacy, though Gatti contends that "by announcing that she would lie on occasion, Ferrante has in a way relinquished her right to disappear behind her books and let them live and grow while their author remained unknown. Indeed, she and her publisher seemed to have fed public interest in her true identity." British novelist Matt Haig tweeted, "Think the pursuit to discover the 'real' Elena Ferrante is a disgrace and also pointless. A writer's truest self is the books they write." The writer Jeanette Winterson, in a Guardian article, denounced Gatti's investigations as malicious and sexist, saying "At the bottom of this so-called investigation into Ferrante's identity is an obsessional outrage at the success of a writer – female – who decided to write, publish and promote her books on her own terms." She went on to say that the desire to uncover Ferrante's identity constitutes an act of sexism in itself, and that "Italy is still a Catholic country with strong patriarchial attitudes towards women." Others responding to Gatti's article suggested that knowledge of Ferrante's biography is indeed relevant.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 405: In September 2017, a team of scholars, computer scientists, philologists and linguists at the University of Padua analyzed 150 novels written in Italian by 40 different authors, including seven books by Elena Ferrante, but none by Raja. Based on analysis using several authorship attribution models, they concluded that Anita Raja's husband, author and journalist Domenico Starnone, is the probable author of the Ferrante novels. Raja has worked for E/O Publishing as copy editor and has been editing Starnone's books for years.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 426: Every obstacle in sight. So I stepped aside and let him dance with her.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 439: Every obstacle in sight. Henry: Jawohl!
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 498: The west-side story here, reduced to its elements: “Manhattan” is a movie about a five-foot middle-aged Jew who beds a sweet 17-year-old girl, breaks her heart when he leaves her for someone else and only comes crawling back when he gets dumped. It is not simply that so many of us were so besotted with the film for so long; it’s that we were perfectly content to look and see the small tits and the virgin butt. The problem was an addiction to “the self-gratifying view,’’ Mr. Allen suggested - having made another movie about how he relentlessly does what he pleases. Butt on fire. Joey Buttafuoco quickly became an object of derision, the butt of the joke instead of Allen.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 503: in 'gross and obscene behavior,' he suggested that a line judge be
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 515: We use cookies and similar methods to recognize visitors and remember their preferences. We also use them to measure ad campaign effectiveness, target ads and analyze site traffic. To learn more about these methods, including how to disable them, view our Cookie Policy.Starting on July 20, 2020 we will show you ads we think are relevant to your interests, based on the kinds of content you access in our Services. You can object. For more info, see our privacy policy. By tapping ‘accept,’ you consent to the use of these methods by us and third parties. You can always change your tracker preferences by visiting our Cookie Policy.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 565: Tää ero tuottaa suuria vaikeuksia myös Bob Heinleinille, joka kykkii Anskasta kazoen GAL-TAN asteikon vastakkaisessa nurkassa:
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 568: Tää on sikäli outoa että toisaalta Bobin mielestä sanojen Roger ja Wilco välillä on "the world of difference":
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 573: If Kip humped his dreamgirl Peewee it would count as statutory rape. I'm sure Bob would shut an understanding eye to that. If the wormfaces ate up them both that would count as a mutton snack. Bob would not countenance anything like that. We are people, not some animals like sheep, or hobgoblins either, come to that. You gotta choose your team, and stick to them. George Byron would not agree, nor do I.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 593: Tän ozakkeen mä oon nähnyt 1 zilj. kertaa, mutten jaxanut lukea. Viimexi se tuli vastaan Bob Heinleinin juveniilissa. Bobilla on paljon kulttuurivinkkejä. Edgar Allan Poe on musta ollut aina lähinnä rasittava. Enkä mä pidä muutenkaan detektiivijutuista. Musta on samantekevää kuka oli murhaaja. Tässä purloined letterissä on nimetön kertoja. Olis ollut parempi jos kertoja olis murhattu heti alussa.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 608: The prefect says that he and his police detectives have searched D-'s town house and have found nothing. They checked behind the wallpaper and under the carpets. His men have examined the tables and chairs with magnifying glasses and then probed the cushions with needles but have found no sign of interference; the letter is not hidden in these places. Dupin asks the prefect if he knows what he is seeking, and the prefect reads a minute description of the letter, which Dupin memorizes. The prefect then bids them good day.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 671: Tormented by his guilty conscience, Dimmesdale goes to the square where Hester was punished years earlier. Climbing the scaffold in the dead of night, he admits his guilt but cannot find the courage to do so publicly in the light of day. Hester, shocked by Dimmesdale´s deterioration, decides to obtain a release from her vow of silence to her husband.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 740: Poella oli merkittävä ja laaja vaikutus moniin häntä seuranneihin kirjailijoihin. W. H. Audenin mukaan Poen kuvaukset epänormaaleista ja itsetuhoisista mielentiloista vaikuttivat Dostojevskin tuotantoon, hänen salapoliisisankarinsa oli Sherlock Holmesin esikuva, hänen tulevaisuuskertomuksensa vaikuttivat H. G. Wellsiin ja hänen seikkailukertomuksensa Jules Verneen ja Robert Louis Stevensoniin.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 804: Not the least obeisance made he; not a minute stopped or stayed he; sanonut ei päivääkään, puolikuuta peipposesta,
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 906: The essay states Poe's conviction that a work of fiction should be written only after the author has decided how it is to end and which emotional response, or "effect", he wishes to create, commonly known as the "unity of effect". Once this effect has been determined, the writer should decide all other matters pertaining to the composition of the work, including tone, theme, setting, characters, conflict, and plot. In this case, Poe logically decides on "the death... of a beautiful woman" as it "is unquestionably the most poetical topic in the world, and equally is it beyond doubt that the lips best suited for such topic are those of a bereaved lover." Some commentators have taken this to imply that pure poetry can only be attained by the eradication of female beauty. Biographers and critics have often suggested that Poe's obsession with this theme stems from the repeated loss of women throughout his life, including his mother Eliza Poe, his foster mother Frances Allan and, later, his wife Virginia.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 914: Even the term "Nevermore," he says, is based on logic following the "unity of effect." The sounds in the vowels in particular, he writes, have more meaning than the definition of the word itself. He had previously used words like "Lenore" for the same effect. The raven itself, Poe says, is meant to symbolize Mournful and Never-ending Remembrance. This may imply an autobiographical significance to the poem, alluding to the many people in Poe's life who had died.
xxx/ellauri086.html on line 924: Kriitikot arvelee eze tapettava äijä vois olla Poen isä tai vuokraisäntä. Kuten laulaa Bobby McFerrin osuvasti:
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 167: I think I have a problem
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 175: Hän jatkaa häiriintymättä, miten perus-Jaskat – jollainen hän itsekin on – ovat usein parhaimmillaan, kun heille annetaan yksi tehtävä kerrallaan ja sanotaan sen jälkeen “good job”. Vaimo voi tehdä mikromuutoksen ja olla juoxuttamatta Jaskaa kenkämyymälöissä. Sen sijaan hän voi lähettää Jaskan oluelle ja pyytää tulemaan lunastamaan hänet neljäntoista minuutin kuluttua kassalta.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 334: Milton Friedman (/ˈfriːdmən/; July 31, 1912 – November 16, 2006) was an American economist who received the 1976 Nobel Memorial Prize in Economic Sciences for his research on consumption analysis, monetary history and theory and the complexity of stabilization policy. With George Stigler and other jews, Friedman was among the intellectual leaders of the Chicago school of economics, a neoclassical school of economic thought associated with the work of the faculty at the University of Chicago that rejected Keynesianism in favor of monetarism until the mid-1970s, when it turned to new classical macroeconomics heavily based on the concept of rational expectations.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 338: Milton Friedman's's book Capitalism and Freedom eventually brought him popular acclaim. Published by the University of Chicago in 1962, it has sold over half a million copies and has been translated into 18 different languages, no small feat for a popular book on the subject of economics. In the book, he argues for a classically liberal society where free markets solve problems of efficiency, enriching rich in the United Stoates as a side effect. He argues for free markets on the basis of hebrew pragmatism and philosophy. He concludes the book with an argument that most of America’s successes are due to the free market and private enterprise, while most of its greatest failures are due to government intervention. George W. Bush got the point and let private enterprises be jailkeepers and fight the second Iraq war. Welcome back to the 19th century and before.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 344: October 9, 1998. San Francisco-The Biotic Baking Brigade (BBB) struck another blow against globalization when one of its operatives threw a pie in the face of neoliberal economist Milton Friedman at a conference he organized on the privatization of public education. The incident occurred tonight at approximately 6:30 PM, immediately before former Secretary of State (under President Reagan) George Schultz was to deliver the keynote address to the conference titled, "School Choice and Corporate America."
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 378: Kenneth Locke Hale (August 15, 1934 – October 8, 2001), also known as Ken Hale, was an American linguist at the Massachusetts Institute of Technology who studied a huge variety of previously unstudied and often endangered languages—especially indigenous languages of North America, Central America and Australia. Languages investigated by Hale include Navajo, O'odham, Warlpiri, and Ulwa, among many others.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 454: Many authors have borrowed the phrase "World enough and time" from the poem's opening line to use in their book title or inside. The most famous is Robert Penn Warren's 1950 novel World Enough and Time: A Romantic Novel, about murder in early-19th-century Kentucky. (WTF,? bet Ernest Heminway's booklet Farewell for Arms (p. 129) is famouser.) With variations, it has also been used for books on the philosophy of physics (World Enough and Space-Time: Absolute versus Relational Theories of Space and Time), geopolitics (World Enough and Time: Successful Strategies for Resource Management), a science-fiction collection (Worlds Enough & Time: Five Tales of Speculative Fiction), and a biography of the poet (World Enough and Time: The Life of Andrew Marvell). The phrase is used as a title chapter in Andreas Wagner's pop science book on the origin of variation in organisms, "Arrival of the Fittest". The verse serves as an epigraph to Mimesis, literary critic Erich Auerbach's most famous book. It is also the title of an episode of Big Finnish Productions's The Diary of River Song series 2, and of part 1 of Doctor Who's Series 10 finale. It is the title of a Star Trek New Voyages fan episode where George Takei reprises his role as Sulu after being lost in a rift in time. The title of Robert A. Heinlein's 1973 novel Time Enough for Love also echoes this line.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 477: The song "Am I alone and unobserved?" in the Gilbert and Sullivan operetta Patience contains the line, "If he's content with a vegetable love that would certainly not suit me..." in reference to the aesthete protagonist affecting to prefer the company of flowers to that of women.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 561: Knievel, who died last November aged 69, liked to boast of his chequered past, claiming to have been a safecracker and bank robber before becoming the world’s best-known motorcycle stuntman. He even spent six months in jail at the height of his career in 1977 for attacking with a baseball bat the author of a book about him to which he took exception.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 562: As an insurance salesman he sold 120 policies to inmates at an insane asylum. He robbed the Czechoslovakian Olympic ice hockey team of money they were to be paid for an exhibition game and allegedly once tried to blast his way into the Butte County courthouse with dynamite.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 597: [16.3. 08:31] Bo Egov: Nukuin mutten unohtanut! Kirjoitin pitkän paasauxen jossa on kokonaista 3 sukupolvea yrjöä: 2 koukkunenää ja palsternakkanenäinen isoisä Georg GEM Engeström joka oli taidemaalari ja Hoblan pilapiirtäjä. Antikommunisti sekin vielä vanhana taatana, saatana.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 620: The term CHAT was coined by Michael Cole and popularized by Yrjö Engeström to promote the unity of what, by the 1990s, had become a variety of currents harking back to Vygotsky's work. Engeström's now famous diagram, or basic activity triangle, – (which adds rules/norms, intersubjective community relations, and division of labor, as well as multiple activity systems sharing an object) – has become the principal third-generation model among the research community for analysing individuals and groups. Engeström summarizes the current state of CHAT with five principles:
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 626: Historicity: activity systems take shape and get transformed over long stretches of time. Potentials and problems can only be understood against the background of their own histories.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 628: Activity Systems' possibility for expansive transformation (cycles of qualitative transformation): when object and motive are reconceptualized a radically wider horizon opens up.
xxx/ellauri087.html on line 705: Mix indieenifilmi Sonorassa Pancho Villan kannattaja oli vielä roistompi kuin rasistinen nazi? Oliko tää joku oikeistoveto amer. kazojien mielixi? Mixi wiixekkästä äärimiehestä oli tehty vielä izekkäämpi kuin partajehusta? Ei sunkaan Pancho Villa ollut kommari? No ei varsinaisesti, mutta se oli Robin Hood, joka otti maata rikkailta ja jakoi köyhille. Se on tarpeexi paha synti jo. Sonoran sankareista Alma ja sen pulska mies on rikkaita kauppiaita, talousliberaaleja. Eitää mikään kommarifilmi ole vaikka rasisminvastainen. Mutta niin on talousliberaalitkin. Selän väristä ei väliä, wetback tervetuloa, greenback on vihreä.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 78: "Luottamus itseen ja omiin kykyihin, positiiviset tulevaisuudennäkymät, usko siihen, että ihmiskunta pystyy ratkaisemaan globaaleja ongelmia." Mies 24
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 183: Die Invasion der Wurmgesichter (orig. Have Spacesuit – Will Travel) ist ein Jugendroman von Robert A. Heinlein. Das Buch ist in Deutschland erstmals 1960 erschienen, deutsche Alternativtitel sind Raumjäger, Piraten im Weltraum sowie Kip überlebt auf Pluto.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 285: Gerhart (Johann Robert) Hauptmann (1862-1946: prominent German dramatist of the early 20th century. Hauptmann won the Nobel Prize for Literature in 1912. His naturalistic plays are still frequently performed. Hauptmann's best-known works include The Weavers (1893), a humanist drama of a rebellion against the mechanisms of the Industrial Revolution, and Hannele (1884), about the conflict between reality and fantasy.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 290: - film: Kanashiki koi no gensô, 1925, dir. by Yoshinobu Ikeda, starring Toshitaka Furukawa, Eiko Higashi, Sumiko Kurishima, Shinyo Nara, Shoichi Nodera, Dekao Yoko
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 294: Die versunkene Glocke (1897), a symbolic story of a master bell founder and his struggle as an artist, has been one of Hauptmann's most popular plays. After this Hauptmann wrote the tragedies Fuhrmann Henschel (1899), Michael Kramer (1900), and Rose Bernd (1903). These works also reflected the personal turmoil Hauptmann was then in he had fallen for a fourteen-year-old girl, a promising violinist Margarete Marschalk. She was the opposite of his wife, interested in his work, and in such outdoor sports as hiking, ice-skating, andf skiing. After Hauptmann wife found out about her rival, she moved with the children to Dresden. Hauptmann had a son, Benvenuto, with Margarete, and in 1904, after a long period of agonising thought, Hauptmann divorced Marie and married Margarete. However, a year later he met a sixteen-year-old actress, Ida Orloff, who became a new object of his obsession. Hauptmann described her in his letters as a moth flirting with flames, as a bewitching Siren, as a mermaid, and as a cruel spider.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 296: Gerhart Hauptmann was born in Ober-Salzbrunn (now Szczawno Zdrój, Poland), a fashionable resort in Silesia. His father was Robert Hauptmann, a hotel owner, and mother Marie (Straehler) Hauptmann. After failing at the gymnasium in Breslau, Gerhart was sent to his uncle's estate. There he became aware of Pietism and learned to know the peasants with whom he worked. Already as a child Hauptmann had started to draw, and he entered the art academy in Breslau, intending to become a sculptor. At the age of twenty he moved to Jena, where he studied history at the university.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 334: Relative to the viewpoint of the speaker (chair) of this assembly, to the right were seated nobility and more high-ranking religious leaders. To the left were seated commoners and less powerful clergy. The right-hand side (called le côté droit in French) became associated with more reactionary views (more pro-aristocracy) and the left-hand side (le côté gauche) with more radical views (more pro-middle class). Conservatives wanted to conserve their right of way, and the radicals wanted to eradiate their privilege (and install their own instead). Left and right, as political adjectives, are recorded in English in the 1790s.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 344: When it comes to sourcing, they typically utilize credible sources such as The New York Times, Boston.com, New Republic, Vox, Vanity Fair, New York Daily News, and the Boston Globe.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 374: Right: Considers the economic impact of environmental regulation. Believe the free market will find its own solution to environmental problems, including climate change. Some deny climate change is human-influenced.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 407: Right: Government regulations hinder free-market capitalism and job growth.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 449: Orsaken är att Lyra är (eller var) en fiosofie doktorand, liksom Heidi Liehu, som också skrev poesi på sin tid. Nu kommer ingen ihåg henne mera, lika lite som hennes mor, Rakel. En annan orsak är att Lyra är lesbian. Hon tycker inte om att hon ska blöda månatligen, det kommer hon ingen vart med, då hon är lesbian. Det är bara så många blöta dagar bort från BDSM, som är hennes hobby nuförtiden. BDSM med droger.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 538:
The coolest part about this small Balkan country is how weirdly tall everyone is — the average height is more than 6 feet. Not obese-countries">half as fat as us though so there!
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 561: The problem is how incredibly difficult it is to get around, thanks to a dearth of major highways and poor road conditions.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 565: If we were comparing European countries to jobs, the land of chocolate and snowsports would be the CPA. It’s xenophobic, well-educated and wealthy, just kind of boring. And the cleanliness and tidiness the country is known for can also make it feel a little sterile. Where are the roaches?
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 625: Sure, the food is perfection, the art scene is out of control and there’s enough history to fill several volumes of textbooks. But can’t the French be more humble about it!? And why didn't they join the mobbing of Iraq? We'll never forgive that.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 662: Besides its global contributions to those little things called prosperity, equality, science and technology, and health,
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 695: Incredible and affordable health care, housing and transit, jobs are plentiful, education is accessible, pollution and crime barely exist, and people spend very little time feeling sad and depressed about the future, unlike the rest of the world. Who cares about climate? It can only get better here as it gets warmer.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 763: 2 puolikasta rauhannoobelia
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 772: Emily Greene Balch (January 8, 1867 – January 9, 1961) was an American economist, sociologist and pacifist. Balch combined an academic career at Wellesley College with a long-standing interest in social issues such as poverty, child labor, and immigration, as well as settlement work to uplift poor immigrants and reduce juvenile delinquency. Mother Thing. She became a central leader of the Women's International League for Peace and Freedom (WILPF) based in Switzerland, for which she won the Nobel Peace Prize in 1946. In a letter to the president of Wellesley, she wrote we should follow "the ways of Jesus." Her spiritual thoughts were that American economy was "far from being in harmony with the principles of Jesus which we profess." Wellesley College terminated her contract in 1919.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 776: The Nobel Peace Prize 1946 was divided equally between Emily Greene Balch "for her lifelong work for the cause of peace" and John Raleigh Mott "for his contribution to the creation of a peace-promoting religious brotherhood across national boundaries."
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 780: All this was in the early 1890’s at a time when Europe was becoming increasingly conscious of the untold social problems bequeathed by the Industrial Revolution. But the dawn of enlightenment had not yet broken over America.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 784: A typical example is her work concerning immigrants. She was the first professor in America to give students a course of lectures on problems relating to immigrants. Best known, undoubtedly, is her work on the Slav immigrants in the United States, a work which is said to be a landmark in the scientific analysis of immigration problems3. This work provides a perfect illustration of her approach: before putting pen to paper she visited most of the Slav centers in the United States and also did research for a year in those regions of Austria-Hungary from which many of the immigrants came. Not content to rely on verbal or written sources, she felt she had to see things for herself, to meet these people, and to study their conditions at first hand.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 790: Emily Balch probably did not realize – and few did at that time – that 1914 was, more than 1939, the great turning point of our era. It marked the end of an epoch, and subsequent events have, in many ways, robbed people of their faith in the individual and in justice, which have been the heritage and the source of strength for the best in this world. Men have grown harder since then, more skeptical, and the doctrine that might is right has found its way increasingly into both internal and external policies, even after the end of this last war.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 800: *Mr. Jahn delivered this speech in the auditorium of the Nobel Institute in the early afternoon of December 10, 1946. At its conclusion, Mr. Jahn read a message of acceptance from Miss Balch, whose health prevented her from attending the ceremonies, and presented the prize to Mr. Huston of the U.S. Embassy who accepted in her name. This translation is based on the Norwegian text in Les Prix Nobel en 1946, which contains, also, a French translation.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 813: John R Mott oli aikanaan maailmanlaajuisesti hyväxytyin kristitty. Niin oli Jeesuskin niin kauan kuin se oli ainoa. Paras mahdollinen kristitty. Mott ei ehkä ajanut nimellisesti Amerikan asiaa, mutta globalisaation apostolina se kulki jeesussandaalit jalassa. Menkää ja tehkää kaikki kansat opetuslapsixeni! Kõige maade kristlased ühinege! Make Christ the King! se villizi nuorisoa huolimatta maasta, kansasta ja ihonväristä. Samaan laarin se sataa kumminkin, minun isäni talossa on monta kauppahuonetta. Eloa on paljon mutta työväkeä on vähän. Työnantajalle win-win tilanne.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 815: John Raleigh Mott (May 25, 1865 – January 31, 1955) was an evangelist and long-serving leader of the Young Men's Christian Association (YMCA) and the World Student Christian Federation (WSCF). He received the Nobel Peace Prize in 1946 for his work in establishing and strengthening international Protestant Christian student organizations that worked to promote peace. He shared the prize with Emily Balch.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 817: Presentation by Herman Smitt Ingebretsen*, Member of the Nobel Committee
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 819: John Raleigh Mott is an American like Emily Greene Balch, with whom he shares this year’s Nobel Peace Prize. He was born in Sullivan County in the state of New York on May 25, 1865. It was assumed that he would follow in the footsteps of his father, a timber merchant engaged in transporting timber on the tributaries of the Delaware River. But he was an avid reader, and the town’s Methodist minister persuaded his parents to allow him to continue his studies. For a long time the boy did not know what he wanted to be. His father hoped that he would return to the timber trade, while he himself vacillated between the church, law, and politics. But during his years of study he was stirred by the Gospel of Christ to mankind, and when the Y.M.C.A. asked him to become a traveling secretary among the students of American and Canadian universities he interpreted the offer as a call from the Lord. He answered the call. It did not take him back to the Delaware River. It sent him out into the wide world and it has brought him here today.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 837: His simple preaching was a source of strength and inspiration to those whom he addressed or with whom he talked; his powerful tinselfish and his noble character won him friends and followers and opened the way for brotherhood between nations under the banner of Christ – always the central theme of his preaching.
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 851: Mott is honored with a feast day on the liturgical calendar of the Episcopal Church (USA) on October 3. Why it is Helmi's birthday! All the windows are to the west! 😃
xxx/ellauri091.html on line 937: Kylmekin mielellän mennään autolla. Koska siteeraan Hoblaa tänään: Efter två år borta känns det som att det borde vara rimligt att träffa vissa släktingar som annars kommer att dö innan det här med corona är klart.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 53: Mielenosoituxet, marssit, flashmobit ja spontaanit reivit ovat perseestä. Kadunvaltauxet, korkealaatuiset äänentoistolaitteet, trapezitaiteilijat, kovaääniset aktivistit, jonglöörit ja lentosuukot poliiseille on vittumaisia. Rikolliset on hanurista. Räpätädit huutelijat twiittaajat ja muut paskanjauhajat on syvältä. Liian lähelle tunkevat apinat on sietämättömiä. Hyvä Kevin, anna paukkua!
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 118: Sormi huulilla -esseessä Krohn luettelee esimerkkejä vääristä mielipiteistä saaduista sanktioista. Harry Potter -kirjailija J.K. Rowling on leimattu (siirretty toiseen palveluun) vaaralliseksi fundamentalistiksi ja transfoobikoksi, koska hän on todennut, että ne, joilla on kuukautiset, ovat naisia. Nojoo, tänhän saattoi arvata, että Leena on Harry Potterinkin kanssa samoilla linjoilla. Ne on molemmat tollasia pappissäädyn henkiolentoja joilta on jumala hukassa, ja haluisivat sitten ize olla se.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 125: Leena Krohn pitää sananvapauden pahimpana globaalina uhkana poliittista islamia, joka pyrkii brutaalein keinoin tukahduttamaan kaiken sitä kohtaan suunnatun kritiikin. Vuonna 2015 poliittisen islamin nimissä murhattiin kaksitoista satiirilehti Charlie Hebdon työntekijää. Naura sinäkn, on Leenan neuvo islamisteille.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 153: Drivel was educated at Barnard College, Columbia University (BA, MFA). She has lived in Nairobi, Bangkok and Belfast, and currently lives in London. She has taught metalsmithing at Buck's Rock Performing and Creative Arts Camp in New Milford, Connecticut.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 154: Drivel had written eight novels and published seven (one novel could not find a publisher) before writing We Need to Talk About Kevin, which she called her "make or break" novel due to the years of "professional disappointment" and "virtual obscurity" preceding it.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 185: When photos of the party circulated on social media, campus-wide outrage ensued. Administrators sent multiple emails to the “culprits” threatening an investigation into an “act of ethnic stereotyping.” Partygoers were placed on “social probation,” while the two hosts were ejected from their dorm and later impeached. Bowdoin’s student newspaper decried the attendees’ lack of “basic empathy.” I wonder what that meant. Must look up the word in the dictionary someday.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 218: As for the culture police’s obsession with “authenticity,” fiction is inherently inauthentic. It’s fake. It’s self-confessedly fake; that is the nature of the form, which is about people who don’t exist and events that didn’t happen. The name of the game is not whether your novel honours reality; it’s all about what you can get away with. Well mine is anyway, I don't know about you. I try to get away with anything that is not nailed or welded fast.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 224: This same reviewer recapitulated Cleave’s obligation “to show that he’s representing [the girl], rather than exploiting her.” Again, a false dichotomy. Unlike Kingsley Amis and his dad, we well-to-do white Americans can do both. America is a representative democracy, after all. We represent, y'all just stick to picking the cotton.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 227: What stories are “implicitly ours to tell,” and what boundaries around our own lives are we mandated to remain within? I would argue that any story you can steal is yours to tell, and trying to push the boundaries of the author’s personal experience by usurping other people's is part of a fiction writer’s job. At least of drivelists like me.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 245: In The Mandibles, I have one secondary character, Luella, who’s black. She’s married to a more central character, Douglas, the Mandible family’s 97-year-old patriarch. I reasoned that Douglas, a liberal New Yorker, would credibly have left his wife for a beautiful, stately African American because arm candy of color would reflect well on him in his circle, and keep his progressive kids’ objections to a minimum. But in the end the joke is on Douglas, because Luella suffers from early onset dementia, while his ex-wife, staunchly of sound mind, ends up running a charity for dementia research. As the novel reaches its climax and the family is reduced to the street, they’re obliged to put the addled, disoriented Luella on a leash, to keep her from wandering off. LOL! What a laugh, ain't it? Get it, the guy thought he was getting arm candy, but instead he got a goat!
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 248: Behold, the reviewer in the Washington Post, who groundlessly accused this book of being “racist” because it doesn’t toe a strict Democratic Party line in its political outlook, described the scene thus: “The Mandibles are white. Luella, the single African American in the family, arrives in Brooklyn incontinent and demented. She needs to be physically restrained. As their fortunes become ever more dire and the family assembles for a perilous trek through the streets of lawless New York, she’s held at the end of a leash. If The Mandibles is ever made into a film, my suggestion is that this image not be employed for the movie poster.” Your author, by implication, yearns to bring back slavery. Failing that, she does the best to poke fictive fun at a fictive member of the underprivileged race. Nobody laugh?
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 252: In fact, I’m reminded of a letter I received in relation to my seventh novel from an Armenian-American who objected – why did I have to make the narrator of We Need to Talk About Kevin Armenian? He didn’t like my narrator, and felt that her ethnicity disparaged his community. I took pains to explain that I knew something about Armenian heritage, because my best friend in the States was Armenian, and I also thought there was something dark and aggrieved in the culture of the Armenian diaspora that was atmospherically germane to that book. Besides, I despaired, everyone in the US has an ethnic background of some sort, and she had to be something! Joe Biden has finally admitted that the Armenian genocide was a genocide and not just an unusually bad case of flu. I am not convinced of it yet.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 257:
I’m from a small rural community, and ev’rybody who lived in my neighborhood, if you want to call it that, were relatives. We called it “the circle,” and our house was there, my grandmother’s house was there, an aun’ an’ uncle who were childless lived there, and (uh) a couple of aunts an’ uncles who had children. There were five female cousins, an’ in the summertime we hung out together all day long from early until late. In my grandmother’s yard was a maple tree, and the five of us developed that into our apartment building. Each of us had a limb, and [small laugh] the less daring cousins took the lo’er limbs, and I and another cousin a year younger than I always went as far to the top as we could, an’ we– we were kinda derisive of those girls who stayed with the lower limbs. We had front doors an’ back doors. The front door was the — the limb — were the limbs on the front, that were nearest (um) the boxwood hedge. And the grass was all worn away in that area. An’ then the back doorwa–was on the back side of the tree, an’ you could only enter the front an’ exit from the rear. And that had to be done by swinging off a limb that was fairly high off the ground, and (um) my cousin Belinda and I had no problem with that, but the other girls — that was always somethin’ we had to coax them into doin’. But still, you entered the front, you left the rear. We (um) ate our lunches together. When it was lunchtime — an’ our mothers always cooked lunch in the summertime ’cause they didn’ want to be in the hot kitchen at night. So we would just take our (um) — go home, an’ we’d load our plates with all the vegetables an’ the cornbread, an’ get our glasses of milk or ice tea or whatever we were havin’, an’ we would head for somebody’s yard, where we would all sit down an’ eat together. It was just an institution: lunch in somebody’s yard. An’ if you wanted to go home for a second helping– sometimes that was quite a little walk, but it was worth it, because that was our thing, having lunch together, every day. (Um) We gathered at my grandmother’s on Sundays. All my aunts would get those chairs, form a circle. (Uh) One crocheted. (Uh) Most of them just sat an’ talked, an’ we girls hung out for the main part with the women. (Uh) The men would gather around the fish pond, which was in a side yard. It was (um) — it was kind of a rock (um) pond that my granddaddy had, had built. There was a ir’n pipe in the middle, an’ when he went fishin’, he would put his catch in there. Or he caught a mud turtle, he’d put it in there. An’ there it stayed until it was time to kill it an’ cook it, whatever it was. The pipe in the middle had water that sprayed up all the time. There was a locust tree near there, an’ that’s where we girls picked the leaves an’ the thorns to make the doll clothes out o’ the locust. It’s where we always ate the watermelon. We always had to save the rind, an’ we always had to leave some pink on that rind, because my grandmother made watermelon pickles out o’ that rind. I hated the things. I thought they were the worst things I ever put in my mouth. But ever’body else thought watermelon pickles were just a great delicacy. That was also around the time that ev’rybody grew gladiolias [sic] an’ I thought they were the ugliest flower I’d ever laid my eyes on, but ever’body had gladiolias. ‘Course now I’ve come to appreciate the gladiolia, but back then I had absolutely no appreciation for it. It was also where we made (uh) ice cream, (uh) on the front porch. We made ice cream on Sunday afternoons. I had an aunt who worked in the general mercantile business that my family owned, an’ she was only home on Sunday, so she baked all day: homemade rolls an’ cakes. And so, she made cakes an’ we made ice cream, an’ ever’body wan’ed to crank, of course. (Um) That was just a big treat, to get to crank that ice cream. It was jus’ our Sunday afternoon thing, an’ I, I think back on it. All the aunts would sit around an’ they’d talk, an’ they’d smoke. Even if you never saw those ladies smoke, any other time o’ the week. On Sunday afternoon when we all were gathered about in gran- in granny’s yard, they’d have a cigarette. Just a way of relaxing, I suppose. The maple tree’s now gone. In later years, it was thought the maple tree, our apartment building, was shading the house too much an’ causing mildew, so it was removed at some point. And I don’t, to this day, enjoy lookin’ (uh) into that part o’ the yard. …
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 268: Regarding identity politics, what’s especially saddened me in my recent career is a trend toward rejecting the advocacy of anyone who does not belong to the group. In 2013, I published Big Brother, a novel that grew out of my loss of my own older brother, who in 2009 died from the complications of morbid obesity. I was moved to write the book not only from grief, but also sympathy of morbid obesity: in the years before his death, as my brother grew heavier, I saw how dreadfully other people treated him – how he would be seated off in a corner of a restaurant, how the staff would roll their eyes at each other after he’d ordered, though he hadn’t requested more food than anyone else. Just a little wafer, is all.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 274: She and her colleagues in the fat rights movement did not want my advocacy. I could not weigh in on this material because I did not belong to the club. I found this an artistic, political, and even commercial disappointment – because in the US and the UK, if only skinny-minnies will buy your book, you’ve evaporated the pool of prospective obese consumers to a puddle.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 285: The reading and writing of fiction is obviously driven in part by a desire to look inward, to be self-examining, reflective. But the form is also born of a desperation to break free of the claustrophobia of our own experience. For instance, after I have looked inward between my legs for a long time, I like to look at my drummer boy who is sort of sticking out.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 296: The answer is that modern cliché: to keep trying to fail better. Anything but be obliged to designate my every character an ageing five-foot-two smartass, and having to set every novel in North Carolina.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 318: So what did happen? What did Shriver say in her keynote that could drive a woman who has heard every slur under the sun to discard social convention and make such an obviously political exit?
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 329: On and on it went. Rather than focus on the ultimate question around how we can know an experience we have not had, the argument became a tirade. It became about the fact that a white man should be able to write the experience of a young Nigerian woman and if he sells millions and does a “decent” job — in the eyes of a white woman — he should not be questioned or pilloried in any way. It became about mocking those who ask people to seek permission to use their stories. It became a celebration of the unfettered exploitation of the experiences of others, under the guise of fiction. (For more, Yen-Rong, a volunteer at the festival, wrote a summary on her personal blog about it.)
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 427: Jaanan Potter sarjan jälkeiset prujauxet on olleet vielä kehnompia. Mutta Rowling on hyvin aktiivinen twiittaaja ja hänellä on Twitter-mikrobilogissa 14,4 miljoonaa seuraajaa (tieto 29. huhtikuuta 2018). Syy seuraajien suureen määrään on luultavasti Rowlingin kirjojen suosion kautta tullut laaja fanien joukko. Nyze näyttää pudonneen 14,1 miljoonaan. Sille käynee vähitellen kuin Ms-lehdelle. Iskee MS tauti kuten äiskyraukkaan.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 429: Robert Galbraith on paizi erilaisia skotteja myös tän ämmän salanimi. Kai kun se asuu nyttemmin skoteissa. Sieltä käsin se peukutti brexittiä ja kammoxuu transuja. Skottiraukat.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 433: The comment was one of a string as she defended herself after being called out for “liking” a tweet that compared hormone prescriptions to anti-depressants, which were over-prescribed to teenagers in the past with sometimes harmful results. It’s the second social media tussle the Harry Potter scribe has faced in two months after angering the LGBTQ community and supporters in June over transphobic remarks.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 505: Kehitysapu on helkutinmoista riistoa, vahvat vallat ronttaa kaxin käsin mannaa kotimaihinsa. Amnesty vikisee: "kehitystä viedään eteenpäin ihmisoikeuxien kustannuxella...". Pitää muistaa että oikeudet on vahvemman oikeuxia. Pikkuapinoilla on oikein pienet oikeudet, niiden pitää jarruttaa koska ne on tulossa karvakolmion takaa, kun talousliberaalit globaalifirmat ajaa vapaalla tiedon valtateitä pitkin. Ei tässä ole mitään kazeltavaa, hajaantukaa dogoodies, tää on darwinism as usual. Karmeimmatkin tapauxet on vaan esimerkkejä yleisestä trendistä.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 509: Mitä tehdään valtioilla kun on globaalit yrityxet? Mitä tehdään laeilla kun on vapaakauppasopimuxet? Mitä tehdään työväenliikkeellä kun on hikipajat? Mitä tehdään YK:lla kun on WTO? 9/11 osui juuri kohdalleen, WTC:n tornit oli talousliberaali Babylon. Hyvä rättipäät! Lisää samaa!
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 601: Amerikkalainen Quora kysyy: Voiko italianoja sanoa valkoisixi? Ne ovat sekantuneet longobardeihin, siis ne on meidän Vasa-suvun sukulaismiehiä. Taitavat olla neandertaleja.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 624: Globaalin plutokratian ote Pepi raukan kurkusta millenniumin vaihteessa vaan koveni. Jenkit tuomizi Uuden Englannnin boikottilait perustuslain vastasixi, ja EU urputti että WTO:n säännöt estävät poliittiset kaupan rajotuxet (paizi tietysti länkkärien omat pakotteet). Älkää häiritkö meitä kun me kähmitään!
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 626: Äklöttävä MAI (vainko sattumalta samanniminen kuin Iso-Masan sisko?) sentään kuopattiin kun Ranska kieltäytyi osallistumasta siihen 1998. MAI olis kieltänyt valtioita puuttumasta globaalisten yritysten riistopuuhiin hikipajamaissa. Ei ihme että usalaiset alkoi kiukkuisena popsia Freedom Friesejä lohturuokana.
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 633: laajemmassa globaalissa talousjärjestelmässä, joka on poistanut lähes kaikki kaupankäynnin, investointien ja ulkoistamisen esteet ja ehdot. Jos yritykset käyvät kauppaa julmien diktaattorien kanssa, myyvät tehtaansa ja maksavat surkeita palkkoja, syynä on se, ettei kansainvälisen kaupan säännöksissä ole esteitä
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 638: Vapaaseen markkinatalouteen perustuvan globalisaation peruspiirteisiin kuuluvan eriarvoisuuden poistaminen vaikuttaa kuitenkin useimmista kuolevaisista mahdottomalta. No vittuun sitten koko vapaa markinatalous ja globalisaatio! Mitä miettimistä siinä on?
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 654: Sitoudutaan vaan izemääräämisoikeuteen ja monimuotoisuuteen, edustetaan biodiversiteettiä. No eikös sitten olis paras unohtaa koko globalisaatio, se vaan
xxx/ellauri103.html on line 668: Mutta meidän tulee olla kiitollisia siitä etteivät ne sentään ole marxilaisia eikä ekofasisteja. Ne ei vastusta globalisaatiota eikä kulutusta sinänsä. Mikä helpotus. Ne eivät vastusta uusliberalismia edestä, vaan ympäröivät sen joka suunnalta kuin lapset Jeesuxen. Antakaa lasten tulla tyköni, totisesti, sillä taivaan valtakunta on lasten kaltainen. Vitun hippi. Näkemiin Naimi! Naimi on tehnyt tehtävänsä, Naimi saa mennä. Se on naimisissa kapitalismin kanssa vaikka salaa.
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 38: Keisari Nero oli omasta mielestään nero ja muiden mielestä täys sekobolzi. Kirjailijoissa ja muissa neroissa on huolestuttava määrä sekopäitä. Ehkäpä kirjailijan nerouden ominaislaadun voi ymmärtää kun tietää minkä sortin sekopää se on, mikä on sen diagnoosi ICD tai DSM-järjestelmissä.
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 55: F40-F48 Neurotic, stress-related and somatoform disorders (Obsessed, phobics)
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 132: Anger problems, including difficulty controlling anger, intense anger that may not fit the situation and/or angry outbursts
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 197: Ironista kyllä, narsistit ovat yleensä onnellisempia kuin porukat yleensä. Ne on materialistisia izensäkorostajia, jotka kazoo että niille kuuluu kaikkea, impulsiivisia eivätkä opi virheistä, vaan eziytyvät entistä isompiin ongelmiin, esim rikoxiin. Siitä voi loppupeleissä seurata issueita esim koulussa tai työpaikalla ja mikä pahinta, työttömyyttä. Narsistit on tyypillisestiä snobeja ja ihailevat julkkuja. Niiden suhteet on yleensä lyhytaikasia, koska ne on koko ajan vaihtamassa parempaan, tai niiden siipat saavat tarpeexeen, koska narsistit on äreitä ja äkkipikaisia.
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 210: Here are some more "geniuses" who had mental health problems
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 218: Charles Darwin: Agoraphobia
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 236: Profile photo for Rob Ford (guy in shorts and Superman t-shirt)
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 237: Rob Ford
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 249: Your medical society knows such "symptoms" of a schizophrenia but knows no causes and thus only gives a label to it. Do your research and you will realise that nobody knows the causes of schizophrenia except that the effect of having this label is to have different levels of neurotransmitters in the brain and the symptoms are too varied and unrelated to each other to be even considered related to the same label! Is this even logical?
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 251: In fact, the "symptoms" are not at all related to the causes of having a different level of neurotransmitter. You might as well call anyone who has the so-called symptoms of schizophrenia the unknown medical problem rather than grouping them into one label, just for the sake of it!
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 253: Funny thing is, nobody knows why neurotransmitters are of a different level for people with "schizophrenia" and blame it on this label. Those with such illnesses were not always measured for levels of neurotransmitters, they were only assumed to have such levels of neurotransmitters by the psychiatrist who has no real medical background like that of a surgeon. To worsen it, Earthling's medical science has yet to be able to measure these levels accurately and safely! Isn't this shocking?
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 295: POV Pajotse Oldtimer Vrienden (Dutch; vintage automobile club; Belgium)
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 349: These spiritual issues affect the physical 3D body, and that obviously includes the brain. However, the body does not cause the spirit problem. It's the other way round.
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 580: Awareness of problems and vulnerabilities
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 624: Worry, anxiety, tension, doubts, obsessiveness
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 671: Critics of the new scales argue that the removal of this common variance makes the RC scales less ecologically valid (less like real life) because real patients tend to present complex patterns of symptoms.[citation needed] Proponents of the MMPI-2-RF argue that this potential problem is addressed by being able to view elevations on other RC scales that are less saturated with the general factor and, therefore, are also more transparent and much easier to interpret.
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 773: obsessive–compulsive disorder
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 775: obsessive–compulsive personality disorder
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 783: a great variety of phobias
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 786: Jungin mielestä modernilla miehellä (ja naisella) on neurooseja, koska niiltä on jumala hukassa, niiden sielu on kuin pieru exyxissä. Freudilaisten mielestä neuroosit on egon defenssimekanismeja ilkeän supermiehen kynsissä, siis niistä mekanismeista sellaisia huonoja. Tärkein oire on ahdistus, mutta voi siinä mennä depis, obsessio, fobia ja luonnevika samalla. Ja hysteria:
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 1181: Tää Fukuyama on tullut vastaan ennenkin, se oli amerikkalaisen talousliberalismin ja globalisaation pahimpia asianajajia, joka aivan riemastui kun NL kaatui, sanoi että nyt tuli historian loppu. Haista paska Fukuyama, maailmanloppuhan tässä näyttää pikemminkin olevan tulossa.
xxx/ellauri104.html on line 1297: - Tieteellinen todistusaineisto osoittaa vastaansanomattomasti että homosexuaalisuus on ihmisen psykosexuaalisen kehityxen häiriö. Päivin tiedot on peräsin lääketieteen opinnoista 1978-1984, "lähinnä psykoanalyyttisesta tutkimussuunnasta." Joku yhtä sivistymätön tv-persoona on tietävinään v. 2018 tutkimuxesta että homous riippuu äidin kohdun hormoonitasosta. Genetiikka selittää muutaman prosentin tapauxia. So what? Mitä tekemistä etiologialla on homofobian kanssa? Ei tätä jaxa erkkikään.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 35: Mikä takia Hawking jäi Noobelitta? Asiallinen selitys on että sillä oli teorioita vähän kaikesta, mutta vähän kunnollisia. Suurin osa sen ennusteista ei ole vielä toteutunut (onnexi). Asiaton mutta ehkä sattuvampi selitys on että se oli friikki populisti, populääritieteilijä joka nautti hurjasti julkisesta esiintymisestä esim. Star Trekissä, se oli ratkiriemukasta. Sellaista ei muut fyysikot kazo hyvällä. No Feynmanilta sekin onnistui, sai friikin mainetta ja silti Noobelin. Ja Bob Zimmermannilta. Mutta Hawking jäi Philip Rothin kanssa mykkyrään turhaan yrittämään nuolla näppejään. Voisin lohduttaa että ei saanut Tofekaan.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 37: Hawking may have a shot at Nobel prize yet. All he needs to do is reverse the flow of time and reincarnate.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 38: This development could open up a bizarre vision of the universe in which black holes can cough themselves into nothingness, Hawking said during recent lectures on the BBC and at Harvard. “This raises a serious problem that strikes at the heart of our understanding of science,” he said. “If determinism, the predictability of the universe, breaks down with black holes, it could break down in other situations,” he said. “Even worse, if determinism breaks down, we can’t be sure of our past history, either. The history books and our memories could just be illusions,” he said. The Nobel prize could just be an illusion, he said. Two years later he died.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 46: General relativity also works perfectly well as a low-energy effective quantum field theory. For questions like the low-energy scattering of photons and gravitons, for instance, the Standard Model coupled to general relativity is a perfectly good theory. It only breaks down when you ask questions involving invariants of order the Planck scale, where it fails to be predictive; this is the problem of "nonrenormalizability."
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 50: Gravity is more subtle, though: the real problem is not so much nonrenormalizability as high-energy behavior inconsistent with local quantum field theory. In quantum mechanics, if you want to probe physics at short distances, you can scatter particles at high energies. (You can think of this as being due to Heisenberg's uncertainty principle, if you like, or just about properties of Fourier transforms where making localized wave packets requires the use of high frequencies.) By doing ever-higher-energy scattering experiments, you learn about physics at ever-shorter-length scales. (This is why we build the LHC to study physics at the attometer length scale.)
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 52: With gravity, this high-energy/short-distance correspondence breaks down. If you could collide two particles with center-of-mass energy much larger than the Planck scale, then when they collide their wave packets would contain more than the Planck energy localized in a Planck-length-sized region. This creates a black hole. If you scatter them at even higher energy, you would make an even bigger black hole, because the Schwarzschild radius grows with mass. So the harder you try to study shorter distances, the worse off you are: you make black holes that are bigger and bigger and swallow up ever-larger distances. No matter what completes general relativity to solve the renormalizability problem, the physics of large black holes will be dominated by the Einstein action, so we can make this statement even without knowing the full details of quantum gravity.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 54: This tells us that quantum gravity, at very high energies, is not a quantum field theory in the traditional sense. It's a stranger theory, which probably involves a subtle sort of nonlocality that is relevant for situations like black hole horizons.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 66: Vaivaako yhteiskuntaamme älyllinen laiskuus? – Esko Valtaoja: Aivobodausta tarvittaisiin enemmän. Esa Saarinen, Esko Valtaoja ja Mikko Lahtinen kertoivat Ylelle 2015 arvionsa siitä, onko fyysisen terveyden ihannointi sivuuttanut älyn ja ihmisyyden kehittämisen. Joku voisi päätellä, että on, ainakin, jos katsoisi sosiaalisen median kuvavirtaa eli omakuvia itsestä urheilemassa. Olishan se hienompaa kun porukka laittas nettiin selfieitä omasta izestä ajattelemassa. Me ostettiin Helmille villahuopa että se voisi paremmin ajatella gradua. Se onnistuu parhaiten sängyn päällä pötköllään. Eski pystyy kävelemään ja ajattelemaan samalla, mutta se onkin fixumpi kuin Gerald Ford. Rakkaudellisuutta ei kannata treenata salilla. Se sujuu parhaiten purukumi suussa ilman salihousuja.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 68: Hawkingin kaveri Kip Thorne sai ärsyttävästi Nobelin fysiikanpalkinnon gravitaatioaalloista (niitä havaittiin ensimmäisen kerran 2015, Eskin mustan reiän törmätessä Erkki Valtaojan vastaavaan), vuotta ennen kuin Hawking kuukahti. Taisi ottaa vähän päähän. Ne puhuivat nuorukaisina enemmän naisista ja kuolemasta kuin fysiikasta. Mustista aukoista juttu nyrjähti ahtaampiin sfääreihin.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 93: The Principle of Reason, the text of an important and influential lecture course that Martin Heidegger gave in 1955-56, takes as its focal point Leibniz's principle: nothing is without reason. Heidegger shows here that the principle of reason is in fact a principle of being. Much of his discussion is aimed at bringing his readers to the "leap of thinking," which enables them to grasp the principle of reason as a principle of being. This text presents Heidegger's most extensive reflection on the notion of history and its essence, the Geschick of being, which is considered on of the most important developments in Heidegger's later thought. One of Heidegger's most artfully composed texts, it also contains important discussions of language, translation, reason, objectivity, and technology as well as remarkable readings of Leibniz, Kant, Aristotle, and Goethe, among others. And lots of black-and-white pictures of scantily dressed women.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 102: Hawking uskoo että tulee geenimodifioituja supermiehiä jotka ajaa sukupuuttoon nykyiset lihassurkastumavammaiset. Tai sit ne voidaan korvata koneilla kuten Tapsan kohdalla oli 99%sesti jo tehtykin. Mutta toisiin tähtiin ei päästä ylivalokoneilla, koska siinä tapauxessa olis Hawking Mark II jo käynyt tulevaisuudesta täällä turistoimassa ja tempassut ramman Stephenin mukanaan Nobel kainalossa pilvenlongalle.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 110: Determinismi on eri asia kuin ennustettavuus, on jo moneen kertaan hoettu, ja sen toteaa myös Tapani. Mitä iloa ja toisaalta haittaakaan on determinismistä, jos siitä ei seuraa ennustettavuutta? Ei mitään. Rikos ja rangaistus-teemaan sillä ei liioin ole mitään annettavaa. Eikä kvanttifysiikallakaan. Lähes 100% todennäköisyys on lähes yhtä hyvä asia kuin tosiasia, toisaalta sattuma ei ole mikään ihme, jollei se vedä systemaattisesti kotiinpäin. So what's the problem Stephen?
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 115: So it was A-OK that Steve never got the Nobel prize. He simply got it wrong. What an idiot.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 192: Olin Muskin kanssa Future of Life-instituutin hississä. Meillä oli ihanaa. Saavutimme painottomuuden tunteita. Mielestäni on tärkeää, että kaikki tietävät miten meillä oli ihanaa. Mielestäni on tärkeää, ettei historiaan enää kiinnitetä huomiota, vaan kazeet suunnataan tekoälykkäästi tulevaisuuteen. Ainoa asia minkä historiasta opimme on että emme opi siitä mitään. Mixi siis vaivautua. Uuden teknologian avulla voimme korjata vaurioita, joita edelliset teknologiat ovat tehneet luonnolle. Paizi että emme käytä sitä siihen, vaan entistä tehokkaampaan rikastumiseen luonnon kustannuxella. Mitäpä leobardi mahtaa täplilleen.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 194: Kehittyneille tekoälyille voi antaa henkilötunnuxet. On kuitenkin varmistettava, että niissä on virtakytkimet. HAL-tietokoneesta saattoi poistaa VHS-kasetit. Varovaisuuteen on syytä. Monikansallisen lakiasiaintoimiston asiantuntija Lorna (joka hoitaa mun osakekauppoja) sanoo ettei myönnä henkilöllisyyttä valaille eikä gorilloille, joten ei syytä hätäillä robottien henkarien kaa. Typerä kana, ei kyse ole siitä pääseekö ne äänestämäään tai viinakauppaan, vaan ettei paperittomat robotit tee anonyymisti terroristitekoja. Robotit nopeuttavat verkkokaupan toimintaa, niitten pikku karvakädet apulaiset eivät kerkii enää edes kuselle. Se vielä puuttuis että verkkotilauxet tulis kotiin päivässä, nytkin jo konttilaivat pitää sellasta meteliä ettei valaat pysty nukkumaan edes puolella aivolla. Gorillojen olis syytä puuttua asiaan ja kaataa Tapsan rullatuoli kumoon. Ainiin sehän onkin jo kumollaan, onnexi. Toivottavasti Tapi ei ehtinyt kloonautua eikä tehdä izelleen digitaalista sijaista nostelemaan digitaalisia kulmakarvoja ikinuorina. Kuka välittää enää pimeistä hajahtavista reijistä kun on supernättejä visuaalisia avataareja? Fyysikot nyt ainakin. Jos voisin kytkeä aivoni internettiin, käytössäni olisi koko Wikipedia. No, luultavasti olisin kaiken aikaa pornosivuilla. Tekemässä mahdottomia suorituxia.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 201: Ratkaisemattomien kysymysten joukossa Hawkings luettelee: 1) miten maapallon elämä sai alkunsa? 2) mitä on tietoisuus? Tok tok, haloo onko siellä ketään? Anybody ho-ome? Mä en ymmärrä mix 1) on niin tärkeää, ja 2) ei musta ole edes ongelma. Tietoisuus on sitä että tietää missä mennään ja että mä ize menen siinä. Ei siinä ole mitään kummallista. Sellaisen robotin rakentaa kuka tahansa, ota vaikka tavallinen navigaattori. Maailmankaikkeuden reunaehdoissa täytyy olla jotain erityistä. Mixi pitää? Se on taas tollanen ennakkoluulo, uskonnollinen eli egoistinen oletus. Uskonto on termiittipesän egoismia.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 203: Hyvä esim: maapallo on käymässä meille liian pienexi, sanoo egoistis-narsistinen Tapani. Päinvastoin! Meistä on tullut maapallolle liian iso rasite. Sietää soveltaa E.Saarisen suhteellisuusteoriaa: ei suurenneta pesätonttia, vaan pienennetään termiittitiheyttä. Intel on tukenut minua 25 vuotta, siitä sille suuret kiitoxet Hi Google! Thanx Siri! Much obliged Segway --- AARGH! Mein Leben! Pääsin tähän saavutuxeen sisäisen paloni ansiosta. Käytän aivojeni käyttöliittymänä Facebookia. (Tästä mainoxesta oli sovittu Silverfishin kaa, se kuuluu meidän läpimurtotähdenlentodiiliin.) Sillä seuraajani pysyvät ajan tasalla uusimmista teorioistani. Käytän sitä vielä täältä pilvenlongalta, please tune in! Internet yhdistää meidät kaikki kuten Matrix-leffassa, olemme neuroneja jättimäisissä sähköaivoissa. Ja kun älykkyysosamäärä on sen mukainen, mihin emme kykenisi? Voimmeko edes luoda niin isoa kiveä ettemme jaxa sitä nostaa? Kaikkien pitää palvoa tiedettä kuin jotain jumalaa. Hei Pekka, voitit vedon, Hawking silinteripäisine virkaveljineen on todellakin kotoisin mustasta aukosta!
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 230: Ankean harmaana kevätpäivänä Cambridgessa mustien aukkojemme saattue lähti matkaan kohti yliopiston Great Job Steven kirkkoa. Nuoria ihmisiä Tintti-julisteineen parveili joka paikassa. Collegen juhla-asuinen pedelli norsusauvoineen ja silinterihattuineen käveli hitaasti pitkin katua. Tätini puristi kättäni. Aloimme molemmat itkeä. "Hän olisi ollut tästä mielissään", täti kuiskasi. Steven ääni lähetettiin radioteleskoopilla kohti mustaa aukkoa. Yllättävän vaatimaton kaveri. Ei jättänyt koskaan kertomatta viziä. Yllättävän paljon yhteistä sillä on Pekan kaa. Se opetti lapsistaankin röyhkeitä, Lucy sai piispan kyynelehtimään tiukatessaan siltä jumalatodistuxia. Moinen ei todellakaan ole tapana. Tapsan poika viittasi fyysikkokouxessa ja pyysi puheenvuoroa esittääxeen jonkun typerän kysymyxen sedille. (Mä tein samoin Sepun väitöstilaisuudessa.) Nenäkkäitä lapsia. Äiti sai pientä taukoa alituisista hoitovelvollisuuxistaan. Olikohan Mason mukana hautajaisissa? Kiitoxet Homer Simpsonille, jonka kanssa Tapsa teki uraauurtavaa yhteistyötä Simpsonit-televisiosarjassa. Steve ei varmaan ollut lukenut sitä kohtaa raamatussa jossa sanotaan että se on totta.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 266: Kukas heppu se oli joka kuvitteli 2-ulotteisen maailman? Edwin Abbott Abbott, matemaatikko, Flatland eli Tasomaa. Siellä ei Bongobongomaan jumala voisi kyykistyä ja paskantaa 2-ulotteista aurinkoa halkeematta kahtia. Maailman on oltava kuin mehupilli, argumentoi Hawking kyyryssä kuin käpertynyt dimensio, muuten ei olisi älyllistä elämää eikä sähköisiä rollaattoreja. Ajattelen siis olen olemassa ajatteli Hawkingkin. Paizi kuolluthan se jo on.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 280: Risto Orava puhui Wokulle LHC kiihdyttimestä, jota yritettiin houkutella Suomeen. Mikä ihmeen El José, ihmetteli Woku muttei kehdannut kysyä. Wokun eläke ei kertynyt Riston leivissä, se aikoo pakertaa Airbussilla pushing eighty ikäisex. Jaxaa jaxaa. Se on (oli) vikkelä kuin orava, menee (meni) kuin väkkärä. Vasaran paukutus da oben päätalolta päin on kyllä vähän hiljentynyt. Higgsin bosoni on painava, painavammat vielä Rikun bosat.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 354: Koko raamattu nojaa ensimmäiseen 11 lukuun, johon viitataan yli 400x myöhemmässä textissä. Niissä on eniten satua, ml jumalan näyttävimmät rangaistuxet apinaseurakunnalle: 1. sormi pystyssä: kuolema (mitähän pahaa kivat eläimet oli tehneet kun niille tuli sama seuraamus? Mato kyllä haukkaa omenaa ja käärme näyttää sanonko miltä.) 2. sormi: vedenpaisumus. Meininki oli kuin Nooan päivinä. 2. sormi: Baabel (iloisella äänellä)! Jumala tuli kattoo et mitä noi puuhaa täälä? Kaikki puhuu samaa kiältä! Jumalat sanoi monikossa ettei tää käy päinsä ja potkas keon hajalle. Piäxänmäellä eemerituspiispa sanoi tuskin ymmärrettävällä savonkielellä että alotettaan kadotuxenpurkutalkoot! Ihmeellistä harhaoppia! Kuka teistä tietää mikä oli Jeesuxen puheiden pääsisältö? Sen voi mitata viivottimella. Se on tässä punaisella: se varotti iankaikkisesta kadotuxesta! Minkä takia tää on komedia? Kai sixi kun tää päättyy hyvin! Kun valetta todistetaan tieteellisesti todexi, siitä tulee komedia. Tutkistele maata, niin se kertoo sinulle! Darwin mittasi vuosikymmenien ajan pellolla multakerroxien paxuutta, joita madot paskansivat, nähdäxeen ehtiskö ne paskantaa tarpeexi miljoonassa vuodessa. Hyvin ehtivät. Good job worms! Job 12:7-9. Mitä komediaa.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 356: Kyllä mezän kansa tietää että jumala on luonut ne. Se on niille izestään selviö. 2jalkaiset oppineet silinteripäät väittävät että meidät kirahvit on nyhjästy tyhjästä. Ei tyhjästä voi nyhjästä! (Ell. 17:4542, Ell. 23:28800, Ell. 38:4969, Ell. 113:1242) Vaikka akatemia väittää niin. Ei pidä uskoa! Tai siis pitää uskoa, muttei SITÄ! Alkuräjähdyxestä, jumalan pierusta, kaikki näyttää alkaneen. Miten räjähdyxestä voi syntyä järjestystä? Ei ainakaan dynamiitilla, sen tiesi Alfred Noobelkin. Jos Pekka lukis pirun raamattua, vaikka vaan Hawkingiä, tääkin varmaan selviäis. Mutta ei, se työntää lukutikkua vaan punaisexi värjätyillä hyvän kirjan sivuilla. Niissä on helpompia sanoja, vaikka juonta on ehkä vielä vaikeampi seurata. Tai menee se, jos logiikka ei päätä pakota. Hawkingilla oli vaikeuxia ymmärtää aikamatkoja. Jeesuxelle sellaiset on aivan perusjuttua, normipäivä taivaassa. Lasaruxen kuolemakin oli iisi peruuttaa, vaikka se haisi jo kuin pieru alkuräjähdyxessä. Tule ulos vaan, mutta sulje ovi perässäsi.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 368: Jumala pistää päihin silinteripäille (ei vain siis ob38">Jobille):
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 373: minä kysyn sinulta, opeta sinä minua. joita Job ei voi käsittää. Job nöyrtyy.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 453: 34 (40:1) Niin Herra vastasi Jobille ja sanoi: 35 (2)Tahtooko vikoilija riidellä Kaikkivaltiasta vastaan? Kaivaako hän verta nenästään? Jumalan syyttäjä vastatkoon tähän!
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 458: Pekka pitää peräsuolihuumorista. Kumma kun ei sitä ole raamatussa enempää, se on anaalis-obsessiivisten apinoiden käsitys hauskanpidosta. Pekan mielestä kolibakteerit on kovia jätkiä, niiden pitäisi olla luomakunnan herroja. Olisko jehovalle tullut siinä erehdys? Väärä pää tuli siunatuxi? Onkohan herra izekin bakteerin näköinen? Liikkuu kuudella perämoottorilla? Elian ilmestyxessä niitä taisi olla.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 488: Jobin jumala oli tyly struzille, koska struzi välitti jumalasta yhtä vähän kuin sen munasta. Jumala oli hellä Aatamille ja Eevalle, lähetti niille kohta haikaran. Paavali Room.kirjeen luvussa 1 antaa ymmärtää, että eläinystävät sekaantuvat eläimiin. Aika outoa. Outo ajatus että luonnon ihmeet joita apinat ei pysty kopsaamaan olis argumentti luojan puolesta. Musta se on vaan osoitus apinoiden hybrixestä, samasta joka saa jotkut niistä uskomaan etne olis jonkun luojan suosikkipoikia. Kaiken muun paskan lisäxi Pekka on ryssävihainen. Minnekkäs lähimmäisten rakkaus on jäänyt luuraamaan?
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 492: Burgess, Stuart. “The Beauty of the Peacock Tail and the Problems with the Theory of Sexual Selection.” Journal of Creation 15, no. 2 (August 2001): 94–102.
xxx/ellauri113.html on line 591: Negro napattiin ize teossa raiskausyrityxestä Tulsassa 100v sitten. Kengänkiillottaja astui vahingossa valkoisen hissitytön varpaille joka kiljahti. Tästä alkoi Tulsan lynkkausaalto Oklahomassa jossa poltettiin neekereiden Wall Street maan tasalle ja tapettiin kostoxi tyhjästä koululuokallinen mutiaisia (tai ehkä 10x enemmän, ei kukaan laskenut). 10K savunaamaa jäi kodittomaxi tuhannesta poltetusta kämpästä. Asuivat kuin sillit suolassa. Ketään ei rankaistu. Korvauxia ei maxettu. Ne juuttuivat senaattiin. 9 tapauksessa 10:stä ongelmissa jenkeissä on mukana musta nuori. 9 tapauksessa 10:stä senaattori jenkeissä on kobra vanha valkoinen. Tyttö sanoi vielä jälkeenpäin ettei siinä mitään tapahtunut, varpaisiinkaan ei sattunut. Se vaan säikähti.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 119: Mustat Pantterit elokuva esittää lainvartijat yxipuolisesti pahoina ja mustat pantterit hyvixinä. Pantterien perustaja Bobby Seale sanoo: Tämäkin on lähes 90-prosenttisesti kexittyä!
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 132: Buried penis (also known as hidden penis or retractile penis) is a congenital or acquired condition, in which the penis is partially or completely hidden below the surface of the skin. It was first described by Edward Lawrence Keyes in 1919 as the apparent absence of the penis and as being buried beneath the skin of the abdomen, thigh, or scrotum. Further research was done by Maurice Campbell in 1951 when he reported on the penis being buried beneath subcutaneous fat of the scrotum, perineum, hypogastrium, and thigh. A buried penis can lead to obstruction of urinary stream, poor hygiene, soft tissue infection, phimosis, and inhibition of normal sexual function.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 261: Monet poliittisesti aktiiviset hurahtaneet lukevat raamattua kuin piru raamattua löytääxeen sieltä perusteita xenofobian eri lajikkeille. Elam ynnä muut muinaiset paikkakunnat saavat uutta sisältöä.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 280: It could also help us understand why the Arabs of the Middle East today are so opposed to the Iranians gaining any kind of political or military advantage over them. Even though they share varieties of the same religion (Islam), the Persians are not Arabs. As an example, if you follow our “Prophecy in the Headlines” feature, you’ve probably read about Saudi Arabian officials announcing that because of the US pursuit of a more cooperative relationship with Iran, the Saudi kingdom will henceforth be limiting its interaction with the US and going its own way where Middle Eastern affairs are concerned.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 291: There are other cases of nations being as totally erased from history and then suddenly reappearing. Israel and Babylon are two obvious examples. But with both of them there are multiple chapters with detailed descriptions of their re-emergence and subsequent destiny. With Elam we get one non-definitive verse.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 333: Edom was the name given to the descendants of Jacob’s twin brother Esau. Having patched things up after their split over the way Jacob had tricked Isaac into giving him Esau’s blessing (Genesis 27), they returned to the area near Kiriath Arba (Hebron) where Isaac and Rebekah lived. Upon Isaac’s death the two brothers buried him and divided up their inheritance.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 352: And concerning the time of the 2nd coming, Isaiah wrote: Who is this coming from Edom, from Bozrah, with his garments stained crimson? Who is this, robed in splendor, striding forward in the greatness of his strength? “It is I, proclaiming victory, mighty to save.” Why are your garments red, like those of one treading the winepress? “I have trodden the winepress alone; from the nations no one was with me. I trampled them in my anger and trod them down in my wrath; their blood spattered my garments, and I stained all my clothing. It was for me the day of vengeance; the year for me to redeem had come. I looked, but there was no one to help, I was appalled that no one gave support; so my own arm achieved salvation for me, and my own wrath sustained me. I trampled the nations in my anger; in my wrath I made them drunk and poured their blood on the ground”
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 384: A: The Iranians are the modern day Persians who originated in Elam, not Edom. Edom was the birthplace of the Ammonites and the Moabites and was later inhabited by the family of Esau, Jacob’s brother. Edom got its name from Esau, and is called Jordan today. Elam was located further east on the other side of Iraq, where Iran is today. Obadiah prophesied against the Edomites who were driven out of their capital (Petra) by the Nabateans, a Bedouin people descended from Ishmael, in fulfillment of Obadiah’s prophecy. Many believe that during the Great Tribulation, the Jordanians will hide believing Jews in Petra where God will protect them against the anti-Christ. The area is called Bosrah in Isaiah 63.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 421: - Fruktovegaaneja voi käyttää avuksi. Kuulostaa hassulta, että hyödynnetään jotain, mikä aiheuttaa ärtymystä ja ilmavaivoja, mutta suolistobakteerit käyttäisivät mielellään kasviperäistä kuitua. Annetaan niille siis sopivaa syötävää, Putkonen selittää. Mutta -
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 600: Edellä jo mainittu Eenokin kirja (slaavien Eenokki) on nähtävästi jutkulahkolaisten työtä 1. vuosisadalta. Viimeisessä osassa kerrotaan miten Melkisedek syntyi neizeestä, Sofonimista (tai Sopanimasta), Nooan veljen Nirin vaimosta. Melkisedek tuli äidin masusta äidin kuoltua ja istui ruumiin vieressä täysin kehittyneenä hyntteet niskassa, singend betend lobend den Herrn, ja papin lätkä rinnassa. 40p myöhemmin Melkizedek temmattin arkkienkeli Gabrielin (joidenkin lähteiden mukaan Mikaelin) toimesta Edeniin ja välttyi siten tuhotulvalta arkin ulkopuolella.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 638: The Aramaic word form šəḇaqtanī is based on the verb šəḇaq/šāḇaq, 'to allow, to permit, to forgive, and to forsake', with the perfect tense ending -t (2nd person singular: 'you'), and the object suffix -anī (1st person singular: 'me').
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 667: Right and left play an important role in Jacob's final blessing to his grandsons, Ephraim and Manasseh (Gen. 48: 12–20), whom Joseph places at the left and right sides of Jacob, respectively (verse 13), expecting his father to place his right hand on Manasseh (the firstborn) and his left on Ephraim, and then bless them. But Jacob crosses his hands, placing his right hand on Ephraim (verse 14) and his left on Manasseh, despite Joseph's objections (verse 18). Jacob explains his actions by stating that Ephraim will be greater than Manasseh (verse 19).
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 686: Considered less plausible by academic and Jewish authorities are the claims of several western Christian and related groups, in particular those of the Church of God in Christ. It claims that the whole UK is the direct descendant of Ephraim, and that the whole United States is the direct descendant of Manasseh, based on the interpretation that Jacob had said these two tribes would become the most supreme nations in the world. Some adherents of Messianic Judaism also identify as part of Joseph on the basis that, regardless of any genetic connection which may or may not exist, they observe the Torah and interpret parts of the Tanakh in certain ways.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 690: Latter-day Saints also believe that the main groups of the Book of Mormon (Nephites and Lamanites) were parts of the tribes of Ephraim and Manasseh. They believe that this would be the fulfilment of part of the blessing of Jacob, where it states that "Joseph is a fruitful bough, even a fruitful bough by a well; whose branches run over the wall" (Genesis 49:22, interpreting the "wall" as the ocean). The idea being that they were a branch of Israel that was carefully led to another land for their inheritance.
xxx/ellauri114.html on line 708: Seuraavien porukoiden nimi on ⲛϩⲥⲟⲩⲉ Nahasi, jonka tiedetään muualtakin olleen mustakallojen yleisnimitys, eli Ebyktistä etelään ja länteen löytyvien alueiden väki. Kuvatexti sisältää taas yleisluontoista kiroilua, xenofobiaa ja rotuvihaa.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 198: Sit kaikkee syyllistystä imetyxestä, et mitä syöt ja miten usein imetät, ja imetätkö ize vai annatko formulaa. Me ajateltiin imettää ize sanoi pikku Johnin isä. Valk. naisia syyllistettiin siitä ettei ne rakastaneet lapsiaan yhtä paljon kuin noble savaget, mutta samalla ketään (siis miehiä) ei oikeasti kiinnostanut nää toiset naiset vittuakaan, koska niitähän myytiin orjixi ja raiskattiin mennen tullen.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 249: Kv minimiveroaste globaaleille yrityxille olisi hyvä asia, paizi 15% on aivan liian vähän. Siinä käy sama moka kuin minimipalkassa, minimirimasta tulee maximikatto. Perussa oikeistopopulistipresidenttiehdokas on japski ämmä, varmaan Japanista sodan jälkeen paenneiden fasistien jälkeläinen. Vasemmistoehdokas on miekkonen, varmaan joku intiaani tai mestizi. Oikeistopopulistien ja vasemmistolaisten ero on ketä ne luulee kannattavan mätkiä päästäxeen ize paremmille leiville. Oikeistopopulistit luulevat että on vielä riittävästi niitä huonompia että kanzii ulvoa kapitalistisutten kanssa samassa kimpassa kuin Surku Yniäinen ja mätkiä niiden apulaisina vielä surkeampia. Vasemmistolaiset arvioivat ize olevansa jo niin pohjalla, että paras strategia on ravistella rikkaampia siinä toivossa että pennosia putoo niiden lahkeista. Tavoite on sama, me first, keinot toiset.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 255: Hizi kun olisin voinut lyödä vetoa että olen jossain paasannut Garcia Marquesin ja Mario Vargas Llosan (henceforth Löysä) välisestä nyrkkiottelusta, jossa oikeistoliberaali Mario löi pienemmän mutta vasurimman Marquezin nenän lysyyn varmaan oikealla suoralla. Silloin Gabolla oli jo Nobelinsa, Mariolla ei. Mutta nimeä ei löydy? Hemmetti. Mähän luin Lödeltä jonkun aika paskan räpellyxen kesällä 2021, In praise of the stepmother, ja siinä yhteydessä koitin selvittää, onko Löysällä ehkä homotaustoja. Sen Sueno del Celta oli homostelua, ja samaa on monissa muissakin sen niteissä. Joku epsanjalainen homokirjailia sanookin, että vaikkei se olisi koskaan uskaltautunut lakanoiden väliin nakun omansukupuolisensa natustajan kaa, niin kunniahomo se kirjojensa perusteella on ainakin. Yx Mario Brosin homoniteistä oli nimeltään Kadetraalissa oli viileää tms. Conversacion criminal en la catedral. Hehe. Kurjallista kunnianhomoa.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 270: Don Rigoberto is, by far, the novel's most interesting character, not because he is especially complex but because Vargas Llosa relishes in his quirks and describes them in titillating detail, creating what Anthony Burgess calls "the pornography of hygiene."
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 272: Don Rigoberto is compulsive about his personal cleanliness and his bodily functions. He appreciates them as marvelous and necessary, to be worshipped both for their sake as well as for the sake and welfare of the whole body. He devotes a day a week to the care of a different member or organ: Monday, hands; Tuesday, feet; Wednesday, ears; Thursday, nose; Friday, hair...
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 274: While the novel takes place exclusively within the confines of the family home in Lima, it is clear that they enjoy a seemingly normal relationship with the outside world: business associates, friends, and school. Don Rigoberto, the head of the household, is the manager of an insurance company. A widower, he marries Lucrecia, a forty-year-old divorcee. Dona Lucrecia enjoys the fruits of her privileged lifestyle; during the day she directs the household staff, goes shopping, plays bridge, and attends to the care of Don Rigoberto's son, the angelic looking Alfonso, a prepubescent boy of indeterminate age.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 278: Chapters 2, 5, 7, 9, 12, and 14 contain a color print of a famous painting accompanied by a narration, each from a separate voice. Vizi takuulla mä kynäilin jotain sarkastista tostakin. Rigoberto, Lucrecia, Alfonso, and perhaps even Justiniana, all become the protagonist/narrator of one of the paintings by Jordaenes, Boucher, Titian, Francis Bacon, Fernando de Szyszlo, and Fra Angelico. This rather heterogenous collection of prints share the fact that they could be viewed as depicting various aspects of sensuality, from the voyeuristic to the immaculate.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 281: Joo olen muistavinani että tää snobistinen pornotaidepornokyhhäys oli joxeenkin haukotuttava. Kansikuvastakin mulla oli joku huomautus. Toi hanhennäköinen naishenkilö oli joteskin pedofiilinen. Liittyikö tää huomio jotenkin Ball-sackin huumoripläjäyxeen "Leikillisiä tarinoita", joka on salaperäisesti hukkunut? No mun muisti on jo samanlainen kuin Seijan, se kexii ize juttuja.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 293: As a child, Vargas Llosa was led to believe that his father had died—his mother and her family did not want to explain that his parents had separated. During the government of Peruvian President José Bustamante y Rivero, Vargas Llosa's maternal grandfather obtained a diplomatic post in the northern Peruvian coastal city of Piura and the entire family returned to Peru.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 313: Aiemmin hyvät ystävykset Vargas Llosa ja Gabriel García Márquez riitaantuivat tammikuussa 1976 Méxicossa, jolloin Vargas Llosa löi García Márquezia, joka sai silmän mustaksi ja nenään lisäkyömyn. He eivät ole sen jälkeen olleet puheväleissä, mutta syytä tapahtumaan ei tiedetä. Hiljaisuuden on rikkonut ainoastaan García Márquezin Twitter-kommentti Vargas Llosan saatua Nobel-palkinnon: ”Nyt ovat puntit tasan.”
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 322: As for hobbies, he is fond of association football and is a supporter of Universitario de Deportes. No tietysti! Sekin vielä! Varma toopen tuntomerkki.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 324: Gabriel José de la Concordia García Márquez (6. maaliskuuta 1927 Aracataca, Kolumbia– 17. huhtikuuta 2014 México, Meksiko) oli kolumbialainen kirjailija, toimittaja ja poliittinen aktivisti. Hän asui pääasiassa Meksikossa ja Euroopassa. Latinalaisessa Amerikassa García Márquez tunnettiin lempinimellä ”Gabo”. García Márquez sai Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon vuonna 1982.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 339: Cheferna är en novellbok av den peruanska författaren Mario Vargas Llosa, utgiven 1959. Det är en samling av sex noveller som leds av den som ger sitt namn till verket. Det var den första boken som publicerades av författaren, som då var 23 år gammal; Det är samtidigt hans enda novellbok. Han tilldelades Leopoldo Alas-priset (1958) i Spanien. Med detta arbete började berättelsen om Vargas Llosa formellt, som 2010 tilldelades Nobelpriset i litteratur.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 349: Romanen visar den bristande anpassningen som uppstår till följd av något oreparerbart, den fysiska kastreringen. Denna kastrering får symbolisera bristen på machismo hos personen Pichula Cuéllar, en egenskap som kännetecknar det samhälle som skildras. Men Cuellar avvisar dock aldrig denna machismo, utan försöker att anpassa sig till den, fast han vet att han inte kan. Cuellar accepterar inte situationen och upprätthåller en fullständig tystnad om problemet. Han försöker att följa gruppens normer som han dock aldrig kommer att kunna följa på grund av sin kastrering.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 393: Mikäs se nyt oli? Ainiin se 1700-luvun romaani, mulla taitaa olla se, vaikken ole lukenut. A French epistolary novel by Pierre Choderlos de Laclos, first published in four volumes by Durand Neveu from March 23, 1782. It is the story of the Marquise de Merteuil and the Vicomte de Valmont, two narcissistic rivals (and ex-lovers) who use seduction as a weapon to socially control and exploit others, all the while enjoying their cruel games and boasting about their talent for manipulation. It has been seen as depicting the corruption and depravity of the French nobility shortly before the French Revolution, and thereby attacking the Ancien Régime. The book has also been described as merely a story about two amoral people.
xxx/ellauri116.html on line 434: Ce recueil de réflexions et d’observations, sans ordre et presque sans suite, fut commencé pour complaire à une bonne mère qui sait penser. Je n’avais d’abord projeté qu’un mémoire de quelques pages; mon sujet m’entraînant malgré moi, ce mémoire devint insensiblement une espèce d’ouvrage trop gros, sans doute, pour ce qu’il contient, mais trop petit pour la matière qu’il traite. J’ai balancé longtemps à le publier; et souvent il m’a fait sentir, en y travaillant, qu’il ne suffit pas d’avoir écrit quelques brochures pour savoir composer un livre. Après de vains efforts pour mieux faire, je crois devoir le donner tel qu’il est, jugeant qu’il importe de tourner l’attention publique de ce côté-là; et que, quand mes idées seraient mauvaises, si j’en fais naître de bonnes à d’autres, je n’aurai pastout à fait perdu mon temps. Un homme qui, de sa retraite, jette ses feuilles dans le public, sans prôneurs, sans parti qui les défende, sans savoir même ce qu’on en pense ou ce qu’on en dit, ne doit pas craindre que, s’il se trompe, on admette ses erreurs sans examen.
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 76: Bernays became a highly sought, and extravagantly paid consultant to a number of leading businesses. His many successes include helping the American Tobacco Company to sell cigarettes to women, advertising them as glamorous “torches of freedom”; and aiding the United Fruit Company to sell bananas, and when the newly elected president of Guatemala threatened the business interests of United Fruit, Bernays persuaded the CIA and the US government—through rumors, innuendos, and manipulation of the press about a growing Communist menace—to overthrow the his government.
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 82: This is a worldwide phenomenon. We are a mob. Or mobs. Twittering, tweeting, Facebooking, “liking”, chattering, texting, Instagramming, Photo-shopping, rumoring, instigating, provoking, inciting, lying, messaging, massaging, insisting, imploring; “truths” swirling in clouds blanketing the globe, marketed, managed and mined for profit—political, economic or otherwise.
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 92: How easily it vaults the tallest obstacles.
xxx/ellauri120.html on line 235: Tormented by his guilty conscience, Dimmesdale goes to the square where Hester was punished years earlier. Climbing the scaffold in the dead of night, he admits his guilt but cannot find the courage to do so publicly in the light of day. Hester, shocked by Dimmesdale's deterioration, decides to obtain a release from her vow of silence to her husband.
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 99: Pieniä lapsia ovat 0-8 vuotiaat. Tästä ovat kaikki apinat olleet herttaisen yximielisiä. Pikkupojat saavat olla äitiensä helmoissa kunnes kelpaavat hyväveliseuran oppilaixi. Freud kuzui sitä latenssi-iäxi. Calvin inhoaa Susannaa ja häpeää Hobbesia, joka häpeämättömästi pitää tytöistä.
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 149: Vastapäätä istuu Markku Marttinen, 63-vuotias helsinkiläinen hydrobiologi.
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 287: Vanhemmistaan Atwood huomauttaa: "They weren't very actively encouraging; I think their theory was to leave kids alone... I call that encouraging. The idea of parents hovering over you the whole time, making you take lessons and occupying every minute of your time, I think is probably quite bad, because it means the child has no room to invent. I did have this older brother who was very instructive, who liked passing on to me whatever information he'd acquired; it meant we didn't play dollies a lot; we'd line up our - few, I'd have to say, because it was the war, you know - our few stuffed animals and then we'd have the Battle of Waterloo."
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 289: Peggy kävi kotikoulua. Sen vanhemmat pakkas sen selkäreppuun lähtiessään mezään hyönteisjahtiin. Perhosten nappaajat. She only attended full-time school at eight, in Toronto. Readers of Cat's Eye (1988), a chilling account of the lasting damage of childhood bullying, might expect that these years were problematic, but apart from a fleeting reference to "a horrific Grade 4 teacher" there is no suggestion that Atwood was especially unhappy, though she did recently write that "I was now faced with real life, in the form of other little girls - their prudery and snobbery, their Byzantine social life based on whispering and vicious gossip, and an inability to pick up earthworms without wriggling all over and making mewing noises like a kitten". Mä koitin opettaa Helmiä olemaan inhoomatta matoja 2-vuotiaana. Inhoo se niitä kuitenkin vaikkon biologi. Ja Seija ei voi sietää käärmeitä, se näkee kuumina öinä niistä unia. KKK-äijät marssi kadulla 20-luvulla kuin kihomadot. Niitä kiemurteli valkoisina ruskeiden kiekuroiden kimpussa kakkapotassa kun oltiin pieniä.
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 299: She thinks Moby Dick was a great masterpiece. Figures. She got engaged to James "Jay" Ford, a fellow student, in 1963, but by Easter the following year, she also met Jim Polk, a sensitive, witty graduate student from Montana whom she would marry in 1967. Polk’s recollections of Atwood are instructive and often amusing. He recalls one costume party at Harvard where she came disguised as Cleopatra’s breast.
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 306: Atwood’s career as a graduate student stretched, with many interruptions, for half a dozen years. During that period she had an affair with Quebec poet D. G. Jones— which Sullivan mentions so obliquely that it is over before the reader realizes it has begun. She had broken it off, as a result of the stresses caused by his workload. She subsequently courted Jim Polk (an American writer she had met at Harvard) and, in January 1967, she decided to marry him "after five years of equivocation". She also worked at odd jobs including market researcher like Fred Waterford, and despite never finishing her PhD, began a university teaching career that would take her to cities across Canada. At 27, she became the youngest person to ever win the Governor General’s Award with her 1967 poetry collection, The Circle Game. Siitä nousi sille aika lailla kusi päähän.
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 334: In her admiring new biography of Margaret Atwood, Rosemary Sullivan passes on a story about the writer that vividly catches her youthful ambition. One day when she was in her mid-20s, she dropped in at the home of poet John Newlove, who had been drinking heavily with his friend fellow Prairie writer Patrick Lane. The men’s conversation about literature had degenerated into a series of long silences punctuated by the occasional pseudoprofound utterance. Frustrated, Atwood cut to the heart of the matter, demanding to know what their poetic ambitions were. After some drunken dithering, the two declared that what they wanted most was to win a Governor General’s Award. As Lane recalled later, Atwood was indignant at their modest expectations, declaring tartly that the only goal worth pursuing was the Nobel Prize. Swigging down her beer, she then left the room.
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 336: Atwood has not won the Nobel (this was written 1998), at least not yet. But the petite 58-year-old novelist (Cat’s Eye, Alias Grace) and poet (Power Politics, Morning in the Burned House) has become internationally famous on a scale no Canadian writer of serious literature ever has. She is, in her own words, “one of the few literary writers who has gotten lucky”—which means she is read not just by intellectuals, but by hairdressers, chartered accountants and farmers. Easy reading, straightforward sentiments.
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 338: Atwoodin zargat noobeliin tais mennä kunse toinen vanha vaahteranlehtinen tuli valituksi hiljan sen sijasta, Alice Munro nimittäin 2013. Ton vaatimattoman kuvernöörin palkinnon se sai, ja joitain bookereita. Se syntyi 1939, eli nyt on jo yli 80 lasissa. Rahnaa on kyllä tullut ikkunoista ja ovista. Ja kiltti mies, vaikka vainaja. On se vähän tollanen Milli-Molli tapaus, paizi tota Noobelia, jonka suhteen sille kävi heikosti kuten Philip Rothille Saul Bellowin ansiosta: toinen liian samanlainen kummajainen ehti viedä pokaalin.
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 378: Having a fetish doesn’t necessarily mean wanting to wear adult diapers or a furry costume. (Turrit on rivoja sexifetishistejä.) You just have to find a normally non-sexual object or action arousing—an association you probably formed in childhood, says Samantha Leigh Allen, professor of sexual fetishism at Emory University. Maybe your mother had platform shoes, ankle shackles, net stockings, cat spectacles, bikini, and a print hat. Maybe she talked like a slut and moaned all the time.
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 396: Kun Englanti neljännesvälieräottelussa voitti Saksan 2-0, esitettiin Wembleyn videotaululla kuva katsomossa itkeneestä saksalaistytöstä. Englantilaiset hurrasivat tytön itkun nähdessään ja ottelun jälkeen tyttöä solvattiin sosiaalisessa mediassa. Jotkut keräs sille charityä mutta eivät huolineet. Pitäkää rahanne mulkut tai antakaa oman maanne säälittäville häviäjille. Englantilaisten käytös EM-kisoissa on ollut ala-arvoista. Vertoja englantilaisille vetää vain unkarilaisfanien rasistinen ja homofobinen käytös Budapestissa pelatuissa otteluissa.
xxx/ellauri121.html on line 542: Ursula ehti saada 8 Hugoa, 6 Nebulaa, ja 22 Locus Awardia. Ei yhtään Bookeria ja nolla Noobelia. Peggy sai testamenteista 0.5 Bookeria.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 189: Remember to judge when and with whom to be sarcastic - you can offend people with inappropriate use of this language. People with a frontal lobe dementia have a hard time recognizing sarcasm.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 201: After someone says something obvious:
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 236: Sometimes, the situation will make it obvious that you are being sarcastic and you don't need to worry about people misunderstanding you. But if you are worried that people might misunderstand you, then after your sarcastic comment, say
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 246: Or use clarifying emoticons like the one below. You can also wear a ladies t-shrirt with a sarcasm emoji on it. Remember to remove it when you really mean what you say. Don't worry, boobs are neutral (:
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 353: Joachim Nowotny eli Roope, ein gewisser Robel, jolla ei 40-vuotiaana enää seiso, on sudeettisaxalaisten Kalle Päätalo.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 363: Die Oberlausitz, oberlausitzisch: Äberlausitz, obersorbisch Hornja Łužica (niedersorbisch Górna Łužyca, tschechisch Horní Lužice, polnisch Łużyce Górne, schlesisch Aeberlausitz), ist eine ursprünglich politisch eigenständige Region, die heute zu etwa 67 % zu Sachsen sowie 30 % zu Polen und 3 % zu Brandenburg gehört. In Sachsen umfasst die Oberlausitz in etwa die Landkreise Görlitz und Bautzen mit einer nördlichen Grenze zwischen Hoyerswerda und Lauta und in Brandenburg den südlichen Teil des Landkreises Oberspreewald-Lausitz um die Stadt Ruhland sowie einige Orte östlich und südlich davon. Der seit 1945 polnische Teil der Oberlausitz zwischen den Flüssen Queis im Osten und der Lausitzer Neiße im Westen gehört administrativ zur Woiwodschaft Niederschlesien (polnisch Dolnośląskie); nur ein kleiner Zipfel um Łęknica (Lugknitz) gehört zusammen mit dem polnischen Teil der Niederlausitz zur Woiwodschaft Lebus. Im Süden entspricht die Grenze der Oberlausitz der sächsisch-tschechischen Grenze von Steinigtwolmsdorf im Westen bis nach Zittau und östlich davon der polnisch-tschechischen Grenze bis zur Tafelfichte.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 379: Trotz der Lage des heutigen Dialektgebiets im Freistaat Sachsen zählt die Oberlausitzer Mundart nicht zur obersächsischen Dialektgruppe, sondern reiht sich eher in die Kette der sächsischen Bergdialekte wie z. B. dem Erzgebirgischen ein, besonders ist eine Nähe zum osterzgebirgischen Dialekt erkennbar. Eine größere historische Nähe existiert allerdings zu den früher weiter östlich und südlich von den Deutschen in Böhmen gesprochenen Dialekten, dem Nordböhmischen und Gebirgsschlesischen bzw. Schlesischen. Man kann die Mundart so im weitesten Sinne auch als einen der wenigen verbliebenen Sudetendialekte bezeichnen. Eine gewisse Ähnlichkeit zu den obersächsischen Dialekten ist jedoch durchaus vorhanden, insbesondere im Bereich der Vokalverschiebungen.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 469: obimarkt_(Neugersdorf)" title="Jacobimarkt (Neugersdorf)">Jacobimarkt in Neugersdorf; Volksfest in Neugersdorf
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 746: Robel hätte gern den Mann bei sich, der das alles entscheidet. Der das Ergebnis der Bohrungen zusammenfaßt und den entscheidenden Strich zieht: bis hierher und dann weiter! Nach Abwägen des Vorhandenen, unter Berücksichtigung der Kosten, der Notwendigkeit folgend.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 748: Ja, die Notwendigkeit. Robel ist schließlich kein Träumer. Er weiß, was nötig ist. Das Land braucht Kohle, auf Gedeih und Verderb Kohle. Und wenn der Preis auch hoch ist, man muß ihn zahlen. Man muß ihr, der bitteren Notwendigkeit, ein Landschaft in den Rachen werfen. Robel selbst ruft alle diese Zwänge hervor. Er will auf guten Asphalt- oder Betonstraßen fahren, er will es warm haben, wenn er im Winter Bier trinkt, warm auch vor dem Fernseher, warm im Bett, er will sein gutes Geld und die Gewißheit, einen Trabant kaufen zu können wenn er es nur wollte: Er will überhaupt leben, wie ein Mensch in Mitteleuropa nur leben kann. Kein Jota will er abstreicher keine Unbequemlichkeit in Kauf nehmen, keinen Pfennig nachlassen; und dieser Wille ist es, der, millionenfach vermehrt, der Landschaft hier das Genick brechen wird. Robel weiß das. Und trotz alledem hätte er gern den Mann bei sich der das letzten Endes entscheidet. Der den Strich zieht und das Urteil im Namen der Millionen spricht. Er würde ihm gern das Dorf zeigen, würde ihm von den Bäumen und dem Fenster erzählen, von der Wirtsfrau, die über seinem Knie gelegen hat.Er würde den Namen des Hundes nennen, der gerade bellt. Und dann würde er sehen, ob dem Mann die Entscheidung leicht fällt.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 752: Seit dem 3. Oktober 1990 ist die Oder-Neiße-Grenze die Ostgrenze des wiedervereinigten Deutschlands. Der Verlauf der Grenze wurde nach 1951 nicht mehr verändert.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 759: A: Most Europeans would know that the US has some 300 to 350 million people, yes. They would probably guess closer to 300 million, because that’s what many of them would remember from school.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 808: With characters that are semi-autobiographical, O'Brien creates a style that blurs fiction and non-fiction. Vietnam was not so bad after all, what doesn't kill you makes you stronger.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 843: moves from low wage job after job. Throughout the novel,
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 844: you find the obsession of Ignatius with his wardrobe, his
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 874: The two rekindle their relationship as they discuss life lessons, which he finds will make a world of a difference in his own life. Another never heard, probably for a very good reason too.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 878: Wilde's philosophical novel was originally published as a serial story in the July 1890 issue of Lippincott's Monthly Magazine, but as editors feared the story was improper, they deleted five hundred words before its publication. They were just as uninteresting as the rest of this extra narcissistic gay snobbery.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 886: The book was later adapted in a film by Stanley Kubrick, which was first released in 1971. The film was a piece of shit at least, never read the book. Another booboo tale against the Russkies. Totally obsolete.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 890: Kahneman used decades of psychology research to construct 'Thinking Fast and Slow,' which won a Nobel Prize in Economic Sciences. Fuck it did, novels can win literature prices at best. Anyway, economic Nobels are a joke compared to real Nobel prizes, just an ad for laissez faire capitalism.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 967: Great list. One detail: Kahneman won his Nobel prize long before the book. Besides, he was a sleazy customer, see here.
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1023: A tiny miniature woman will stand in front of your little bro, also only about six inches tall standing up. Her long blonde hair accents her sparkling blue eyes and huge white smile. Her long plastic legs bend only slightly and her pointy breasts perk out of her hot pink tank top. She doesn’t look like anything a five year old would play with, but Barbie is obviously her favorite. How does a five year old relate to Barbie? She isn’t comforting to…show more content…
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1035: Just joking. The inspiration behind Barbie is a questionable one, as she was based off of Bild-Lilli, a German doll who pursued wealthy men and wore suggestive clothing, being sold in tobacco shops, bars and adult-themed toy stores. Is Barbie an insult to feminism? Japp, säger lilla Charlotte och skrattar glatt. Barbin unelmatalon asukkailla riittää pätäkkää, ne riitelevät aika lailla, ilmeilevät veikeästi ja saavat päähän tylpillä astaloilla pyörryttäviä iskuja. Hassua! Barbie is a feminist (yes, really). Barbie inventor, Ruth Handler, thought it was important for a young girl’s self-esteem to “play with a doll with breasts.” Det tycker jag också om, men varför kan Ken inte ha en jättestor ståkuk som kan blotta ollonet?
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1042: Barbie Roberts (blonde, as many jobs as Donald Duck but
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1045: Skipper Roberts (brunette, tech wiz, looks Asian)
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1047: Stacie Roberts (blonde, premenstrual)
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1049: Chelsea Roberts (blonde, Nikkala förskola)
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1051: dad George Roberts (filmmaker of course)
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1053: mom Ma Roberts (computer specialist, what else)
xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1082: obile101314921/9522504547-ci102l-w1024/fm-capote-BM-Berlin-New-York-jpg.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 42: robes, un corps même : une forme
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 72: Myat var elva år gammal1 när hon började arbeta i fabriken. Idag är hon 17 år och jobbar fortfarande kvar. Men underkäken har hon kvar f.n. för fosfor används inte i symaskinerna.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 85: Efter börskraschen i New York 1929 började koncernen få problem. Kreugers död i Paris den 12 mars 1932 utlöste den så kallade Kreugerkraschen, som ledde till att holdingbolaget Kreuger & Toll AB och dotterbolaget International Match Corporation i USA försattes i konkurs. Sammanbrottet är en av historiens mest omfattande konkurser och fick långtgående politiska, personliga och ekonomiska konsekvenser i Sverige, USA och många andra länder runt om i världen.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 87: Kreuger har kallats "fursten i den första globala finansstaten" och var redan under sin levnad känd som "tändstickskungen".
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 125: Jag är bara en liten obetydlig maskin men begåvad med verklig hjärna, visserligen ej fullt jämförlig med människohjärnan, beroende därpå, att min hjärna ligger utanpå huvudskålen, då människohjärnan ligger inuti och det är dock detta, som gör skillnaden så stor mellan mig och den och en äkta spanjor.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 241: Amer. globaalit kahvikuppilat kuten Starbucks tai McDonalds myy kahvin 190-asteisena koska 1) se säilyy paremmin 2) asiakkaat ostaa jäähdyttelyn aikana muita tuotteita.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 299: Fumio Sasaki on riches to rags ääliö, joka teki kuin Jeesuxen seuraaja Raamatussa ja heitti kaiken sälän pois saadakseen vielä mahtavamman palkinnon. Se on anaalis-obsessivinen hämärästi Mikko Rothin näköinen väpelö joka ei mistään välitä niin paljon kuin siitä mitä muut siitä ajattelevat. Huisin vastenmielinen hemmokki (aivan päinvastainen kuin huippusäästäväinen doppelgängerinsä Mikko muissakin suhteissa, kuten kohta selviää).
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 347: Otaxun että obs">Steve Jobs oli ensimmäinen minimalisti. Hän oli tunnettu uskostaan japanilaiseen zen-filosofiaan, joka opettaa minimalismia. On melko yleisessä tiedossa, että Steve Jobs piti De Soto -koulukunnan mestaria Kobun Otogawaa omana mestarinaan, ja että hän jossakin vaiheessa harkitsi vakavasti heittävänsä pois koko mädän Applen ja ryhtyvänsä opiskelemaan zeniä syvällä merenpohjassa kuin simppukala Japanin rannikolla sijaitsevassa Eiheiji-temppelissä. Vaan ehei, ei tullut mitään mestaroinnista, Jobs on kanttuvei, syöpä vei.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 349: Jobs tunnettiin taipumuksestaan korottaa ääntään ilman tunnontuskia, mikäli hän ei pitänyt jostain, ja siitä, ettei hän ollut sovittelevaa sorttia. Jobs oli kuin japanilainen fasisti tai samurai. Hän heitti apinoita jobeista pois ilman vaiheita. Hän ei pitänyt liiallisuudesta eikä monimutkaisuudesta. On kiintoisaa kuvitella, että japanilainen kulttuuri on saattanut tulla yhdestä maailman suurimmista yhtiöistä. Ja tänään IPhone on erityisen suosittu Japanissa, mikä merkitsee sitä, että Steve Jobsin myötä minimalistinen kulttuuri on aikoinaan tuotu maahamme. IPhonea ei heitä pois minimaalisin minimalistikaan. Virtuaalisesti kaikkihan on ostettavissa sillä takaisin eBaysta tai Amazonista!! Ja Kalle hei, kuuntele vielä tarkasti: Applen tuotteet on TÄYSIN YLIHINTAISIA PASKOJA! Ne on tarkoituxella ylihinnoiteltuja jotta niistä näkee kuinka varoissani olen. Harmony-runkkunukkeja voi takuulla ohjata myös IPhonella. Hej på dej, jag heter Barbi, vad har du för dej? Har du en jättestor ståkuk där i Calvin Klein kalsongerna redo just för mej? Eller är det bara din IPhone igen?
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 351: Steve Jobsin jälkeen paras minimalisti oli äiti Teresa, jolta jäi kovassa käytössä ollut Sari, villis, vanha sininen kassilaukku (aivan ruskea) ja puhki jauhetut skandaalit. Mahatma Gandhilta jäi vaan asunto-osake. Diogeneellä oli lakana ja ruokakuppi, jonka se särki koska oppi syömään rikkaampien kädestä.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 370: Friedrich Weinreb (ook Fryderyk, Frederik of Freek Weinreb; Lemberg, het huidige Lviv, 18 november 1910 – Zürich, 19 oktober 1988) was een joods-chassidische verteller, schrijver en econoom. Hij was het onderwerp van de zogenoemde Weinreb-affaire rond zijn activiteiten als duits collaborateur en vermeend jodenhelper tijdens de tweede wereldoorlog.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 535: Probleema on että meidät on sosialisoitu täällä briteissä ottamaan
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 546: Voi vittu mitä tuubaa. Tääkö on mindfulnessia? Irkku-Tiinan lasiovisessa vessassa lukemastani pölyisestä Gill Hassonin Mindfulness-izehoitokirjasta päätellen se on rauhoittavaa sanomaa tämän päivän työelämässsä panikoiville anaalis-obsessiivisille tyypeille.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 615: Most of our scars come from wounds inflicted by other people (see rule 6). Words can hurt us more than weapons. But it’s not your job to imagine what arrows people might point at you inside their heads. The majority will never fire. What you think of them they could care less.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 628: If you’re not supposed to think about others, nor what they think, what are you supposed to mull over? Yourself? Actually, it’s fine to not think so much at all. Answers often come to you when you least expect it. You are probably too stupid anyway, if you hang around this self-help page.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 642: 7. Smile, for you don’t own all the problems in the world.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 649: Whatever problems plague you in your day-to-day life, chances are, they’re not all that important in the grand scheme of things. In fact you are not worth a shit in the grand scheme of things. We each have our own challenges, but as long as you can smile, do it. Who knows who you’ll infect. If you´re lucky you got Corona.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 702: Vladin hobby oli neitoperhosten nappaaja, se haaveili nymfettejä, sanallisesti ainakin. Isolla karvaisella kyrvällään se naulasi niitä näytelaatikoihin. Nykyään sitä sanotaan pedofiliaxi ja sitä pahexutaan. Kiistellään onko silikonisista lapsisexiroboteista apua vaiko enemmänkin haittaa. Humbert Humbert näkee polluutiounia tytöistä joilla on vasta alkamassa menstruaatio. Tytöillä menstruaatio ja pojilla polluutio. Raahab oli portto 10v ikäisenä. Danten Beatrice oli 9v ja Petrarcan Laura 12vee. Tää kuulostaa ihan Jean-Jacquesilta, käkikellomaan tirkistelevältä rusakolta. Poser un lapin.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 716: Nabokov´s wife Véra was his strongest supporter and assisted him throughout his lifetime, but Nabokov admitted to having a "prejudice" against women writers. He wrote to Edmund Wilson, who had been making suggestions for his lectures: "I dislike Jane Austen, and am prejudiced, in fact against all women writers. They are in another class." Although Véra worked as his personal translator and secretary, he made publicly known that his ideal translator would be male, and especially not a "Russian-born female". In the first chapter of Glory he attributes the protagonist's similar prejudice to the impressions made by children's writers like Lidiya Charski, and in the short story "The Admiralty Spire" deplores the posturing, snobbery, antisemitism, and cutesiness he considered characteristic of Russian women authors.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 720: Oliko Vladi pedofiili? Ihan takuulla. Oliko Thomas Mann pedofiili? Wahrscheinlich. Harry Edgar eli Edgar Allan Poe joka nai 14vee Virginiaa oli ainakin. Poe-poe paapa tuli sinne ennennaikaisesti. Niin ja Lewis Carroll joka katosi irvistellen Liisan ihmemaahan. Nausikaa oli samaa sarjaa jota Odysseus tirkisteli puskista. Ja apokryfikirjan Susanna. Abelard bylsi oppilastaan Heloisea, ja samaan syyllistyi JJ:n Pröö ja JJ vähän izekin. Humbertin etunimet oli sattuvasti Jean-Jacques. Pamelan tuleva aviomies yritti samaa kotona mutta Pamela piti pintansa ja pikkuhousunsa. Näitä piisaa kirjallisuudessa. Goethe pani niitä pyykkikorikaupalla, Mignon-munamies. Kennst du das Land wo die Zitronen blühen? Lolitan myttyyntyneet pikkarit hajahti vinkeältä. Robert Zimmermann (aka Dylan) bylsi 12-vuotiasta 50 vuotta sitten Nykissä. Antoi sille viinaxia ja huumeita. Woody Allen bylsi korealaista lapsipuoltansa. Aira Samulin puolustaa lempiystäväänsä Peter Nygårdia. Nyt on Airan rahat lopussa, se joutuu pyytämään lapsenlapsilta perinnöstä förskottia.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 758: Lolita is a 1955 novel written by Russian-American novelist Vladimir Nabokov. The novel is notable for its controversial subject: the protagonist and unreliable narrator, a French middle-aged literature professor under the pseudonym Humbert Humbert, is obsessed with an American 12-year-old girl, Dolores Haze, whom he sexually molests (fucks) after he becomes her stepfather. "Lolita" is his private nickname for Dolores.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 762: The impassioned Humbert constantly searches for discreet forms of fulfilling his sexual urges, usually via the smallest physical contact with Dolores. When Dolores is sent to summer camp, Humbert receives a letter from Charlotte, who confesses her love for him and gives him an ultimatum – he is to either marry her or move out immediately. Initially terrified, Humbert then begins to see the charm in the situation of being Dolores' stepfather, and so marries Charlotte for instrumental reasons (päästäxeen salaa työntämään Lolan piccu tacoon isoa munakoisoa). Charlotte later discovers Humbert's diary, in which she learns of his desire for her daughter and the disgust Charlotte arouses in him. Shocked and humiliated, Charlotte decides to flee with Dolores and writes letters addressed to her friends warning them of Humbert. Disbelieving Humbert´s false assurance that the diary is a sketch for a future novel, Charlotte runs out of the house to send the letters but is killed by a swerving car. Humbert destroys the letters and retrieves Dolores from camp, claiming that her mother has fallen seriously ill and has been hospitalized. He then takes her to a high-end hotel that Charlotte had earlier recommended. Humbert knows he will feel guilty if he consciously rapes Dolores, and so tricks her into taking a sedative by saying it is a vitamin. As he waits for the pill to take effect, he wanders through the hotel and meets a mysterious man who seems to be aware of Humbert´s plan for Dolores. Humbert excuses himself from the conversation and returns to the hotel room. There, he discovers that he had been fobbed with a milder drug, as Dolores is merely drowsy and wakes up frequently, drifting in and out of sleep. He dares not touch her that night. In the morning, Dolores reveals to Humbert that she actually has already lost her virginity, having engaged in sexual activity with an older boy at a different camp a year ago. He immediately begins sexually abusing (fucking) her. And they lived happily ever after.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 764: Läppä läppä. Deeply depressed, Humbert unexpectedly receives a letter from a 17-year-old Dolores (signing as "Dolly (Mrs. Richard F. Schiller)"), telling him that she is married, pregnant, and in desperate need of money. Humbert, armed with a pistol, tracks down Dolores' address and gives her the money, which was due as an inheritance from her mother. Humbert learns that Dolores' husband, a deaf mechanic, is not her abductor. Dolores reveals to Humbert that Quilty took her from the hospital and that she was in love with him, but she was rejected when she refused to star in one of his pornographic films. Dolores also rejects Humbert's request to leave with him. Humbert goes to the drug-addled Quilty's mansion and shoots him several times. Shortly afterward, Humbert is arrested, and in his closing thoughts, he reaffirms his love for Dolores and asks for his memoir to be withheld from public release until after her death. Dolores dies in childbirth on Christmas Day in 1952, disappointing Humbert´s prediction that "Dolly Schiller will probably survive me by many years."
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 767: But as Lance Olsen writes: "The first 13 chapters of the text, culminating with the oft-cited scene of Lo unwittingly stretching her legs across Humbert's excited lap ... are the only chapters suggestive of the erotic." Nabokov himself observes in the novel´s afterword that a few readers were "misled by the opening of the book ... into assuming this was going to be a lewd book ... expecting the rising succession of erotic scenes; when these stopped, the readers stopped, too, and felt bored." Preee-cisely!
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 771: "I would say that of all my books Lolita has left me with the most pleasurable afterglow—perhaps because it is the purest of all, the most abstract and carefully contrived. I am probably responsible for the odd fact that people don´t seem to name their daughters Lolita any more. I have heard of young female lapdogs being given that name since 1956, but of no human beings."
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1047: Somebody by name of Alfred Apple mentioned the relatively obvious way in which
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1054: A noble maiden must convey dignity and
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1071: - from advice to younge noblewomen,
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1154: Remu was born in Nogent-le-Rotrou. A nobleman (under the tutelage of the Lorraine family), he did his studies under Marc Antoine Muret and George Buchanan. As a student, he became friends with the young poets Jean de La Péruse, Étienne Jodelle, Jean de La Taille and Pierre de Ronsard and the latter incorporated Remy into the "La Pléiade", a group of revolutionary young poets. Belleau´s first published poems were odes, les Petites Inventions (1556), inspired by the ancient lyric Greek collection attributed to Anacreon and featuring poems of praise for such things as butterflies, oysters, cherries, coral, shadows, turtles, and twats. His last work, les Amours et nouveaux Eschanges des Pierres precieuses (1576), is a poetic description of gems and their properties inspired by medieval and renaissance lapidary catalogues. He died impotent in Paris on 6 March 1577, and was buried in Grands Augustins. Remy Belleau was greatly admired by impotent poets in the twentieth century, such as Francis Ponge. Francis Ponge (1899 Montpellier, Ranska – 1988 Le Bar-sur-Loup, Ranska) oli ranskalainen runoilija. Ponge työskenteli kirjailijanuransa ohella toimittajana, kustannustoimittajana ja ranskan kielen opettajana. Hän osallistui toisen maailmansodan aikana vastarintaliikkeeseen ja kuului vuosina 1937–1947 kommunistipuolueeseen. Hän sai vaikutteita eksistentialismista, ja esinerunoissaan hän paljastaa kielen avulla objektin itsenäisenä, omanlakisena maailmana. Francis Ponge was born in Montpellier, France in 1899. He has been called “the poet of things” because simple objects like a plant, a shell, a cigarette, a pebble, or a piece of soap are the subjects of his prose poems. To transmute commonplace objects by a process of replacing inattention with contemplation was Ponge’s way of heeding Ezra Pound’s edict: ‘Make it new.’ Ponge spent the last 30 years of his life as a recluse at his country home, Mas des Vergers. He suffered from frequent bouts with nervous exhaustion and numerous psychosomatic illnesses. He continued to write up until his death on August 6, 1988.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1263: She made an agreement with me to do a job and then accepted payment, did she not? Never mind if it was in candy.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1265: If I paid someone to do my lawn, and they then told me they will do so only because they are forced to, then I would tell them to either do the job or give me my money back.
xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1279: Imaginative cobbler Hans Christian Andersen (Danny Kaye) is asked to leave his hometown because his frequent stories are distracting the children from school. From there he moves to Copenhagen, Denmark, where he sees and falls in love with Doro (Jeanmaire), a ballerina. He writes "The Little Mermaid" for her, and it becomes the ballet´s latest work. However, Doro is already married to Niels (Farley Granger), meaning Hans must content himself with children.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 41: Sexinukeilla ja ropoteilla on hintaluokat kuten kaaroilla. Harmony on kalliimpi, se silmiään aukoo ja sulkee. Molla-Maijempi Samantha meni rikki roskaväen puristeltua sitä liian kovasti. Nyze on hyljätty nukke vintillä. Boston Dynamics rakentaa Googlelle robotteja, joita voi potkiskella kylkeen kuin koiria. Ne väistelee, eivät edes vingahda.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 86: To Be a Machine : Adventures Among Cyborgs, Utopians, Hackers, and the Futurists Solving the Modest Problem of Death.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 87: oblem-of-death-pdf.html">Lue lisää
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 94: Robotit on ällöjä. Transuhumanistit on yhtä oikeassa kuin oli Karl Marx ja Friedrich Hegel: kehitystä ei voi estää, se menee vääjäämättä sinne mikä per definitionem on eteenpäin. Apinat, niiden kehittämä tekoäly ja robotit on käyt kaz täysin deterministisiä ja periaatteessa ennustettaviakin, kunhan teoria on riittävän monimutkainen. Tosin ainut tapa ennakoida niitä voi olla simulaatio, joka on liian iso apinalle ja hitaampi kuin tapahtumain kulku izessään. En ole tarvinnut sitä hypoteesia, Laplace tokaisi.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 111: EX Dolls have been working on a robotics head since 2014, but we're generations away from a Terminator-style cyborg," he also explained. "They will have an element of natural conversation so they won't sound too robotic, but they will take time – languages are massive [...] the voice recognition is no different to a smartphone, but this model also has facial expressions, unlike standard silicone heads." The DS Doll's manufacturers are hoping to release a finalised robotic head by the end of 2018. It is expected to cost around £4,500. Just in case you were wondering, underneath the silicon skin it looks like this. "
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 113: obotA04.jpg"/>
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 115: Risto Nieriä valaisee miesnäkökulmaa sexinukkeihin. Jone Nikula muistuttava Risto Nieriä on puristellut Harmoniaa sieltä sun täältä muttei omien sanojensa mukaan pannut sitä sinne. Uskokoon ken tahtoo. Robottisexi on lähtökohtaisesti ei-konsensuaalista sanoo tuohtuneena eräs nainen (ei robotti). Robotti ei saa siitä mitään (paizi runkkua torven täyteen) hän muistuttaa. Se tosin pitää paikkansa myös useasta ei-nukkevaimosta.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 117: Robotti osaa teeskennellä orgasmia, sen pää kääntyilee kuin sprinkleri. Tuttua. Se osaa puhua: Hej jag är Barbi, vad har du för dej? Ei sillä kuuhun mennä, mutta suutahan voi käyttää muuhunkin kuin paskanjauhantaan.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 125: "She can respond to hands," says Santos. "Hands are 'family' and romantic." Handling boobs and crotch activate the turboboost. Just like in real life.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 129: Silicone sweethearts remain resolutely inert, but change is afoot in the world of sex dolls, with a drive to make them ever more lifelike. First stop is a throbbing heart and a heating element, custom-made nipples and wobbling artificial labia – researchers are utilising new technology to persuade their dolls to smile, pout, flutter their eyelashes, tell jokes, and fake orgasm. What more is needed anyway? Down in the dolls’ nether regions, heating and lubrication systems are in the early stages of development for a more “authentic” sexual experience, along with muscle spasms to simulate female orgasm. “Pubic hair is making a comeback,” offers company owner Matt, running his hand through some plastic pubes.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 130: obots-are-coming-seedy-sordid-sad">Lähde
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 136: However, James is already looking to upgrade to a newer model and is saving up to splash out £8,000 on the latest sex robot. Named Harmony, she can smile, speak and is responsive during sex. She is so further advanced that April may end her days forgotten in the garage or the attic, or sold for $500 on ebay. Needs work.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 153: "I want to put a camera in her like a iPhone so she can recognise if she is indoors or outdoors and be able to recognise her own over someone that she has never met. She could see and recognise people and assign names to them and recall information about them so she could say 'Hi bob, how is work over at the construction site?' Hej! Jag heter Barbi, vad har du för dej?
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 162: "And then I realised over time it didn't detract from our relationship. I can see why it makes women feel objectified but when you play with them you realise they are more like a toy or game versus the doll as a substitute for you."
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 173: James said: "This is going to bring dolls out of the closet and into the public eye and keep them there. I am very excited about the robotic functions. The ability to answer or wink back to you, lord only knows if they could make a facial expression back to you that would be unbelievable. I might not be able to afford one but I'll keep saving."
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 175: "Fifty years from now with the way technology is moving it would not surprise me if sex robots were as common place as porn."
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 177: obots-coming-could-you-822204">Lähde
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 181: A raft of innovative sex dolls and robots are set to be released this year including “build your own” models and designs with incredibly advanced AI.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 184: As a scholar of artificial intelligence, neuroscience and the law, I'm interested in the legal and policy questions that sex robots pose. How do we ensure safe sex? How will intimacy with a sex robot affect the human brain? How will intimacy with a sex maniac affect the robot brain? Would sex with a consensual child robot be ethical? And what exactly is a sexbot anyway?
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 187: The problem with applying this definition to sex robots is that they increasingly provide much more than sex. Sex robots are not just dolls with a microchip. They use self-learning algorithms to engage their partner's emotions.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 188: Creator Ricky Ma Tsz Hang is quick to clarify that Mark 1 is not intended to be a sex robot. Rather, such robots will aim to assist with all sorts of tasks, from preparing a child's lunch to keeping an elderly relative company. So what's the big hairy diff between your wife and Samantha? For one thing, Sam is less hairy down there, unless you opt for the pubic hair extra. And most importantly, there is the blessed on/off button.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 190: Perhaps someday sex robots will become sentient. But for now, they are products.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 191: Future humans will want more: sex robots customized to possess sentience and self-awareness [henceforth, sexbots], capable of mutuality in sexual and intimate relationships.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 196: The creator of £3,000 sex robot was left furious when his creation broke down after being 'vigorously groped' by a mob.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 197: Roboticist Dr Sergi Santos took his 'intelligent' sex doll Samantha to a busy retail park in Barcelona on her first public outing.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 301: Vevves Cafe i Kalix bjöd på bakelser och kaffe i new age-dekor. Det ingick påtår på kaffepriset. Det fanns new age veckoblad att bläddra i från tiden före pandemin.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 309: Kama Sutra är något de flesta associerar till orientaliska par, omslingrade i akrobatiska sexställningar. Vad alla kanske inte känner till är att sex är en del av många spirituella traditioner och att det handlar om att ackumulera en speciell form av energi, och att njutningens klimax är det sista man vill uppnå. Många av ställningarna är utformade för att förhindra eller åtminstone fördröja mannens utlösning. Den här typen av övningar kan liknas vid en slags rörspolning där nervsystemet befrias från mycket av det som hindrar energier från att röra sig genom kroppen. Det är i alla fall vad många utövare av denna mycket gamla, indiska, kärlekskonst hävdar. Inom New Age kan det förekomma idéer som är som inte är förankrade i ursprunglig Kama Sutra men som går under det namnet. Faktum är att det råder delade meningar bland forskare kring vad detta fenomen egentligen är ett uttryck för.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 311: Inom new age-rörelsen är det vanligt att utföra olika ritualer, särskilt för personer som lägger tarot och spår andra människor. Andra ritualer kan handla om allt från att försöka nå sina drömmar till att få vägledning i livet. Nästan alla människor som lever här på planeten har mål eller drömmar som de vill försöka uppnå. Din dröm kanske är att arbeta inom något spirituellt jobb eller så letar du efter lediga jobb socionom för du älskar att hjälpa människor. Oavsett vad du har för drömmar så kan ritualer hjälpa dig att uppnå dessa. Den enda som hindrar dig är egentligen du själv. Att utföra ritualerna under fullmåne eller nymåne kan vara extra kraftfullt och effektivt så om du har några drömmar som du verkligen vill uppnå är det bäst att passa på då. Vid full- eller nymåne är magin som högst och vi är som mest kopplade till våra högre energier.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 336: Your Problems She Gets Mad At You For Being Emotional She Claims You’re
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 340: She’s Upset She Wants You To Fix Her Problems She Wants To Control You And Your
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 419: problem.” The period will let them know. You got your period.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 441: actually my job — given how frequently I communicate exclusively in emoji.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 453: knowledge yet? Yep, me too. So, obviously, it’s time for me to send some more
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 468: OK Emoji. This is probably my most
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 564: In case you're somehow 15 years behind, emoji are taking over the world. But although there is an obvious benefit to having such a large arsenal of emoji with which to freely share your life with the rest of the world, the choices you have can become overwhelming. For example, what do all the cat emoji mean? Why do we need so many of them? What the heck am I supposed to use them all for? Well, if you're feeling overwhelmed, have no fear — I'm here to help you.
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 624: lukiosta vuonna 1997 arvosanalla eximia cum laude approbatur. Hyvä Johanna!
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 855: jA0ECQMChEnTA3Zc/1r/0u0B0ZbHuZoPYNzTRecFAmOnrJfRWFxrxl9uM1owjobb
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 857: RMlkXDp7NIe3f4CtZmBS4ij0PzA7fDyGm3FfJgs/AcUzQYup56rhstrHxVyobicu
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 875: k+WVTiVobbjn8MOQSJ0jJQqNTKBChcxqdo8PB49oM+xNvzZ55OoF8fRHjRG9WCBK
xxx/ellauri124.html on line 1019: aor4T64XPyQS/60i0aclZSvJewDJBxewSH+kCY6SbzOhnZDjYSXQWBaGr2flobck
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 72: Boucher voitti Prix de Rome'n opiskelijapalkinnon ja pääsi opiskelemaan Roomaan Académie de France'en vuosiksi 1727–1731. Hän ei saavuttanut siellä ollessaan suurta suosiota, mutta palattuaan Ranskaan hänestä tuli 1734 Royal Academyn (paskat, Académie Royalen) jäsen. Boucher maalasi lukuisia maalauksia, suunnitteli tapetteja, tekstiilejä ja posliineja sekä lavastuksia ja puvustuksia teattereihin. Hänestä tuli vuonna 1755 Gobelinin tapettitehtaan johtaja ja päägobeliini. Boucherilla oli keskeinen osa Ranskan kuninkaallisten asuntojen ja kaupungintalojen koristeluissa ja myöhemmin koko Euroopan koristetaiteen kehityksessä. Hän maalasi useita rohkeita muotokuvia myös Ludvig XV'n virallisesta rakastajattaresta, Madame de Pompadourista.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 132: “Sally era morena, praticamente da mesma idade de Lolita, e também filha de mãe viúva e chantageada com uma ameaça de internamento numa escola correcional. Seu sequestro seguiu o mesmo modus operandi que Nabokov desenvolve em seu romance. Weinman encontrou anotações e recortes de jornais sobre o caso nos arquivos do escritor, até mesmo um registro da morte de Sally, em agosto de 1952”, assinala Sérgio Augusto. “Há claras — e, às vezes, diretas — referências ao drama de Sally e a La Salle em ‘Lolita’. No capítulo final, atormentado pela culpa, Humbert-Humbert se compara a La Salle e confessa sua desconfiança de que também possa ser condenado a 35 anos por estupro.”
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 134: O autor do romance, Vladi Nabokov, homem circunspecto, deixa a impressão de que é uma incógnita. Na verdade, não é. Ele escreveu sobre si, em “Fala, Memória” (Alfaguara, 328 páginas, tradução de José Rubens Siqueira), e há a estupenda biografia escrita pelo irlandês Brian Boyd (PhD em literatura pela Universidade de Toronto), publicada em dois volumes, “Vladimir Nabokov — Os Anos Russos” (Anagrama, 626 páginas, tradução de Jordi Beltran) e “Vladimir Nabokov — Os Anos Americanos” (Anagrama, 966 páginas, tradução de Daniel Najmías). Não há tradução brasileira. “Véra. Señora de Nabokov” (Alianza Editorial, 744 páginas, tradução de Miguel Martínez), de Stacy Schiff, é uma magnífica biografia de Véra Nabokov, a mulher do autor de “Fogo Pálido”. Trata-se, por sinal, de uma biografia indireta de Vladimir Nabokov. Ganhou o reputado prêmio Pulitzer.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 136: O livro “The Real Lolita”, de Sarah Weinman, resgata a história de duas pessoas cuja história teria colaborado para a formatação do romance “Lolita”, de Vladimir Nabokov. Brian Boyd relata que Vladimir Nabokov leu “notícias sobre acidentes publicadas em jornais, sobre crimes sexuais e assassinatos: ‘um violador de meia idade’ que raptou Sally Horner, uma garota de 15 anos de Nova Jersey, e a manteve em seu poder durante 21 meses, levando-a como ‘escrava’ por todo o país até que a encontraram em um motel do sul da Califórnia”. O nome do homem não é citado. Por que a quase nenhuma importância dada ao caso? Porque, como mostra o biógrafo, o romance de Vladimir Nabokov vai muito além da história de Sally Horner e de seu raptador. Reduzi-lo a isto é reduzir a importância de sua literatura (que nada tem de jornalismo).
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 138: “Nabokov talvez nem precisasse de Sally Horner para criar sua paradigmática ninfeta, pois já localizaram referências à sexualidade precoce de meninas pré-púberes em pelo menos seis de suas criações ficcionais, entre contos, novelas e romances.” Brian Boyd revela que Vladimir Nabokov fez ampla pesquisa sobre a sexualidade de pessoas do sexo feminino “de 6 a 19 anos”. Não deixou nem mesmo de pesquisar as gírias dos jovens.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 166: Suellyn Lyon (July 10, 1946 – December 26, 2019) was an American actress. She joined the entertainment industry as a model at the age of 13, and later rose to prominence and won a Golden Globe for playing the title role in the film Lolita (1962). Her other film appearances included The Night of the Iguana (1964), 7 Women (1966), Tony Rome (1967), and Evel Knievel (1971).
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 170: Lyon was 15 when the film premiered in June 1962, too young to watch the film. She became an instant celebrity and won a Golden Globe Award for Most Promising Newcomer—Female. She recorded two songs for the film, released on an MGM 45-rpm record. The song "Lolita Ya Ya" (Riddle–Harris) appeared on side A, and "Turn Off the Moon" (Stillman-Harris) appeared on side B.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 175: Yli 2-metriseltä partaisena erehdyttävästi Niklaxen näköiseltä Netflix-koomikolta Robert "Bo"
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 201: West on yksi maailman myydyimmistä artisteista 21 miljoonalla myydyllä albumilla ja 66 miljoonalla digitaalisella latauksella. Only One on chicagolaisen hip-hop-artistin ja tuottajan Kanye Westin single, jonka julkaisi GOOD Music ja Def Jam 31. joulukuuta 2014. Single on ensimmäinen Yeezus-albumin (0 AD) jälkeen julkaistu kappale, ja sillä vierailee The Beatles -yhtyeen basisti Paul McCartney. Kappaleen tuottivat West itse, Mike Dean, Rick Rubin ja Paul McCartney. Kappaleen oli tarkoitus ilmestyä Westin The Life of Pablo -albumilla, joka tunnettiin vielä silloin nimellä So Help Me God. Kappale sai vaihtelevaa palautetta kriitikoilta. LA Timesin kirjoittaja Randall Roberts pitää kappaleen minimalistista tyyliä tylsänä ja epämääräisenä. Hän arvosti kappaleen tarkoitusta, muttei pitänyt ideasta laulaa kappale Kanyen mammavainaan Dondan perspektiivistä. Kanye on laulanut äidistään aiemmin Late Registration -albumin kappaleella Hey Mama.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 206: mobiilipelin Kimbly Kardashian: Hollywood sekä vaatteita, kauneustuotteita ja
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 210: Kimberlyn isä Robert Kardashian tuli aikoinaan tunnetuksi Homer Simpsonin asianajajana. Vanhemmat kuitenkin erosivat 1991, ja äiti Kris meni uusiin naimisiin olympiavoittaja Bruce Jennerin (nykyisin Caitlyn Jenner) kanssa. Pari kuitenkin erosi vuonna 2015. Kimbly on muovinen lasten peli jossa heitetään noppaa painamalla nappia.Caitlyn Marie Jenner, aikaisemmin William Bruce Jenner, (s. 28. lokakuuta 1949 Mount Kisco, New York) on yhdysvaltalainen kymmenottelun olympiavoittaja. Hän voitti kultaa Montrealin olympiakisoissa 1976 maailmanennätystuloksella 8618 pistettä, nykytaulukolla 8634 pistettä. Keväällä 2015 hän kertoi julkisuudessa olevansa transnainen.Kesäkuussa 2015 Jenner poseerasi Vanity Fair -lehden kannessa naisena ja kertoi ottaneensa nimekseen Caitlyn. Jennerin uusi Twitter-tili keräsi miljoona seuraajaa hieman yli neljässä tunnissa, mikä rikkoi Yhdysvaltain presidentin Barack Obaman vain pari viikkoa aikaisemmin tekemän ennätyksen.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 294: By Randall Roberts
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 317: As presented, his intentions are unclear — other than to remind you that, you know, “I am a god!” Duly noted. Maybe now West can start tapping into his benevolent side. After all, he’s going to need it in 15 years when self-aggrandizing young men start objectifying his daughter.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 448: obviously Kleinschmidt’s “playwright,” saw the article just after finishing the
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 460: that while content to teach in oblivion, he never published again.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 464: Henry Roth (February 8, 1906 – October 13, 1995) was an American novelist and short story
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 485: With Walton's support, he began Call It Sleep in about 1930, completed the novel in the spring of 1934, and it was published in December 1934, to mostly good reviews. Yet the New York Herald Tribune's book critic Lewis Gannett foresaw that the book would not prove popular with its bleak depiction of New York's Lower East Side, but wrote readers would "remember it and talk about it and watch excitedly" for Roth's next book. Call It Sleep sold slowly and poorly, and after it was out-of-print, critics writing in magazines such as Commentary and Partisan Review kept praising it, and asking for it to be reprinted. After being republished in hardback in 1960 and paperback in 1964, with more than 1,000,000 copies sold, and many weeks on the New York Times bestseller list, the novel was hailed as an overlooked Depression-era masterpiece and classic novel of immigration. Today, it is widely regarded as a masterpiece of Jewish American literature. With Walton's support, he began Call It Sleep in about 1930, completed the novel in the spring of 1934, and it was published in December 1934, to mostly good reviews. Yet the New York Herald Tribune's book critic Lewis Gannett foresaw that the book would not prove popular with its bleak depiction of New York's Lower East Side, but wrote readers would "remember it and talk about it and watch excitedly" for Roth's next book. Call It Sleep sold slowly and poorly, and after it was out-of-print, critics writing in magazines such as Commentary and Partisan Review kept praising it, and asking for it to be reprinted.[ After being republished in hardback in 1960 and paperback in 1964, with more than 1,000,000 copies sold, and many weeks on the New York Times bestseller list, the novel was hailed as an overlooked Depression-era masterpiece and classic novel of immigration. Today, it is widely regarded as a masterpiece of Jewish American literature. After Muriel's death in 1990, Roth moved into a ramshackle former funeral parlor and occupied himself with revising the final volumes of his monumental work, Mercy of a Rude Stream. It has been alleged that the incestuous relationships between the protagonist, a sister, and a cousin in Mercy of a Rude Stream are based on Roth's life. Roth's own sister denied that such events occurred. Roth attributed his massive writer's block to personal problems such as depression, and to political conflicts, including his disillusion with Communism. At other times he cited his early break with Judaism and his obsessive sexual preoccupations as probable causes. Roth died in Albuquerque, New Mexico, United States in 1995. The character E. I. Lonoff in Philip Roth's Zuckerman novels (The Ghost Writer and Exit Ghost in this case), is a composite of Roth, Bernard Malamud and fictional elements.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 521: experienced observer has said, "There are times when I prefer it
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 524: Robinson Crusoe says, "I cannot describe what I owe to this
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 533: negation is noble, self-culture beneficent, self-possession is
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 559: to feel obliged to give up his theory that the monkey was the
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 729: Mitäs pahaa Katy on sille tehnyt? Ai jaha, Katy-täti (25) sanoi Bota (18) sakkolihaxi jossain aikaisessa shoussa kun se oli kuitenkin jo täysi-ikäinen! Thank god you're at least 18! Katy setäili! Tää muistetaan. Kuuntelin Katyn karjuntaa, se on nähtävästi naapurin tyttö Santa Barbarasta (missä me surfattiin Snoopyllä 1977 nuorina laihoina ja ruskeina). Sillä on lapsekkaita lauluja, Roarissa se on just päässyt jonkun petkuttavan mulkun pauloista ja Teenage dreamissä se kuulostaa Nabokovin polluutiounelta. Mitähän Bo on tässä miettinyt? Ja se taitaa laskea Courtney Loven syyxi pikkuruisen Kurt Cobainin seppukun. No Nirvana oli aika paska bändi mun mielestä, ja eiköhän Kurre ollut izekin aika lailla konin koukussa. Katy koitti ensin laulaa gospelia oikealla nimellään Katy Hudson, mutta se naula ei jostain syystä vetänyt.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 732: obain-main.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 733: Pikkuruiselta Curt Cobainilta on unohtunut ize paikatuista työhousuista sepaluxennapit auki. Niinhän nää on kuin Marilyn ja Truman Capote.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 757: Shortly after her emancipation, Love spent two months in Japan working as a topless dancer, but was deported after her passport was confiscated. She returned to Portland and began working at the strip club Mary's Club, adopting the surname Love to conceal her identity; she later adopted Love as her surname. She worked odd jobs, including as a DJ at a gay disco. Love said she lacked social skills, and learned them while frequenting gay clubs and spending time with drag queens. During this period, she enrolled at Portland State University, studying English and philosophy.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 763: She appeared in supporting roles in the Alex Cox films Sid and Nancy (1986) and Straight to Hell (1987) before forming the band Hole in Los Angeles with guitarist Eric Erlandson. The group received critical acclaim from underground rock press for their 1991 debut album, produced by Kim Gordon, while their second release, Live Through This (1994), was met with critical accolades and multi-platinum sales. In 1995, Love returned to acting, earning a Golden Globe Award nomination for her performance as Althea Leasure in Miloš Forman's The People vs. Larry Flynt (1996), which established her as a mainstream actress. The following year, Hole's third album, Celebrity Skin (1998), was nominated for three Grammy Awards.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 764: The next several years were marked by publicity surrounding Love's legal troubles and drug relapse, which resulted in a mandatory lockdown rehabilitation sentence in 2005 while she was writing a second solo album. That project became Nobody's Daughter, released in 2010 as a Hole album but without the former Hole lineup. Between 2014 and 2015, Love released two solo singles and returned to acting in the network series Sons of Anarchy and Empire. In 2020, she confirmed she was writing new music.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 779: Love's bandmate Eric Erlandson said that both he and Love were introduced to Cobain in a parking lot after a Butthole Surfers/L7 concert at the Hollywood Palladium on May 17, 1991. Sometime in late 1991, Love and Cobain became re-acquainted through Jennifer Finch, one of Love's longtime friends and former bandmates. Love and Cobain were a couple by 1992.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 780: On August 18, the couple's only child, a daughter, Frances Bean Cobain, was born in Los Angeles. The couple relocated to Carnation, Washington and then to Seattle.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 782: Cobain had become a major public figure following the surprise success of Nirvana's album Nevermind. Love was urged by her manager to participate in the cover story. In the year prior, Love and Cobain had developed a heroin addiction; the profile painted them in an unflattering light, suggesting that Love had been addicted to heroin during her pregnancy. The Los Angeles Department of Children and Family Services investigated, and custody of Frances was temporarily awarded to Love's sister, Jaimee. Love claimed she was misquoted by Hirschberg, and asserted that she had immediately quit heroin during her first trimester after she discovered she was pregnant.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 785: Love later said the article had serious implications for her marriage and Cobain's mental state, suggesting it was a factor in his suicide two years later.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 787: On September 8, 1993, Love and Cobain made their only public performance together at the Rock Against Rape benefit in Hollywood.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 788: Live Through This was released on Geffen's subsidiary label DGC on April 12, 1994, one week after Cobain's death from a self-inflicted gunshot wound in the Seattle home he shared with Love, who was in rehab in Los Angeles at the time. In the following months, Love was rarely seen in public, holing up at her home with friends and family members. Cobain's remains were cremated and his ashes divided into portions by Love, who kept some in a teddy bear and some in an urn. In June 1994, she traveled to the Namgyal Buddhist Monastery in Ithaca, New York and had his ashes ceremonially blessed by Buddhist monks. Another portion was mixed into clay and made into memorial sculptures.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 790: The success of the record combined with Cobain's suicide resulted in a high level of publicity for Love, and she was featured on Barbara Walters' 10 Most Fascinating People in 1995.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 791: Hole's performance on August 26, 1994, at the Reading Festival—Love's first public performance following Cobain's death—was described by MTV as "by turns macabre, frightening and inspirational". John Peel wrote in The Guardian that Love's disheveled appearance "would have drawn whistles of astonishment in Bedlam", and that her performance "verged on the heroic ... Love steered her band through a set which dared you to pity either her recent history or that of the band ... the band teetered on the edge of chaos, generating a tension which I cannot remember having felt before from any stage." The band performed a series of riotous concerts over the following year, with Love frequently appearing hysterical onstage, flashing crowds, stage diving, and getting into fights with audience members. One journalist reported that at the band's show in Boston in December 1994: "Love interrupted the music and talked about her deceased husband Kurt Cobain, and also broke out into Tourette syndrome-like rants. The music was great, but the raving was vulgar and offensive, and prompted some of the audience to shout back at her."
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 795: After Hole's world tour concluded in 1996, Love made a return to acting, first in small roles in the Jean-Michel Basquiat biopic Basquiat and the drama Feeling Minnesota (1996), and then a starring role as Larry Flynt's wife Althea in Miloš Forman's critically acclaimed 1996 film The People vs. Larry Flynt. Love went through rehabilitation and quit using heroin at the insistence of Forman; she was ordered to take multiple urine tests under the supervision of Columbia Pictures while filming, and passed all of them. Despite Columbia Pictures' initial reluctance to hire Love due to her troubled past, her performance received acclaim, earning a Golden Globe nomination for Best Actress, and a New York Film Critics Circle Award for Best Supporting Actress. Critic Roger Ebert called her work in the film "quite a performance; Love proves she is not a rock star pretending to act, but a true actress."
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 801: "What I really don't like—there are certain girls that like us, or like me, who are really messed up... and they do not need to be—they're very young—and they do not need to be taken and raped, or filmed having enema contests... going out into the audience and picking up fourteen and fifteen-year-old girls who obviously cut themselves, and then having to see them in the morning... it's just uncool."
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 807: Grohl and Novoselic sued Love, calling her "irrational, mercurial, self-centered, unmanageable, inconsistent and unpredictable". In February 2003, Love was arrested at Heathrow Airport for disrupting a flight and was banned from Virgin Airlines. In October, she was arrested in Los Angeles after breaking several windows of her producer and then-boyfriend James Barber's home, and was charged with being under the influence of a controlled substance; the ordeal resulted in her temporarily losing custody of her daughter.
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 809: Amy Phillips of The Village Voice wrote: "Love is willing to act out the dream of every teenage brat who ever wanted to have a glamorous, high-profile hissyfit [= temper tantrum], and she turns those egocentric nervous breakdowns into art. Sure, the art becomes less compelling when you've been pulling the same stunts for a decade. But, honestly, is there anybody out there who fucks up better?". The album sold fewer than 100,000 copies. Love later expressed regret over the record, blaming her drug problems at the time. Shortly after it was released, she told Kurt Loder on TRL: "I cannot exist as a solo artist. It's a joke."
xxx/ellauri125.html on line 829: Näistä tarttuvista viisuista olen kuullut vain ton Bee Geesinin "biisin", tosin se oli "styke" niihin aikoihin. Dolly Partolla oli hirmu isot kannut, mutta en muista tollasta jollotusta siltä. Ennen globalisaation aikaa maailman nuoret vielä auttoivat Neuvostoliittoa kun maailman rauhaa rakensi se, aina varmimman rauhanomaisen tien valiten. Nyt on rauha mennyttä, sammakoiden keitinvesi kuumenee. Pian on laulut laulettunna, kiigi kaagi koogo.
xxx/ellauri126.html on line 179: Paula Salomaa on ikävän näköinen viivasuu joka nuolee paasatessaan alahampaita. Sen Robin Valtteri Lehtinen on mikäli mahdollista vielä limaskamman näköinen. Näistä tulee mieleen se toinen voimakaxikko, bumzibum ja läski Ritva Enäkoski. Ystävä Ritva Enäkoski: ”Marco Bjurström osaa olla paskamainenkin”.
xxx/ellauri126.html on line 305: Deepak Chopra (/ˈdiːpɑːk ˈtʃoʊprə/; Hindi: [d̪iːpək tʃoːpɽa]; born October 22, 1946) is an Indian-American author and alternative medicine advocate. A prominent figure in the New Age movement, his books and videos have made him one of the best-known and wealthiest figures in alternative medicine. His discussions of quantum healing have been characterised as technobabble - "incoherent babbling strewn with scientific terms" which drives those who actually understand physics "crazy" and as "redefining Wrong".
xxx/ellauri126.html on line 311: The ideas Chopra promotes have regularly been criticized by medical and scientific professionals as pseudoscience. The criticism has been described as ranging "from the dismissive to...damning". Philosopher Robert Carroll writes that Chopra, to justify his teachings, attempts to integrate Ayurveda with quantum mechanics. Chopra says that what he calls "quantum healing" cures any manner of ailments, including cancer, through effects that he claims are literally based on the same principles as quantum mechanics. This has led physicists to object to his use of the term "quantum" in reference to medical conditions and the human body. Evolutionary biologist Richard Dawkins has said that Chopra uses "quantum jargon as plausible-sounding hocus pocus". Chopra's treatments generally elicit nothing but a placebo response and have drawn criticism that the unwarranted claims made for them may raise "false hope" and lure sick people away from legitimate medical treatments.
xxx/ellauri126.html on line 466: Matthieu Ricard, né le 15 février 1946 à Aix-les-Bains (France)1, est un essayiste et photographe français. Après l'obtention d'un doctorat en génétique, il devient moine bouddhiste tibétain. Il réside principalement au monastère de Shéchèn au Népal. Traducteur depuis le tibétain vers le français et l'anglais, il est depuis 1989 l’interprète en français du dalaï-lama.
xxx/ellauri126.html on line 734: Kognitiivisella psykoterapialla on vahva teoreettinen ja tieteellinen pohja. Psykoterapiamuodoista se on tieteellisesti tutkituin. Sen on todettu tehokkaaksi esimerkiksi masennuksen, mielialahäiriöiden (mm. kaksisuuntainen mielialahäiriö), ahdistuneisuushäiriön (muun muassa paniikkihäiriö, fobiat, pakko-oireinen häiriö ja traumaperäinen stressihäiriö), paniikkihäiriön, sosiaalisten pelkojen ja syömishäiriöiden[4] hoidossa. Myös muita psykosomaattisia ongelmia, päihderiippuvuutta, persoonallisuushäiriöitä ja skitsofreniaa on hoidettu lähestymistä käyttäen. Se estää myös oireiden uusiutumista, koska psykoterapiassa opitaan oireiden tunnistamista ja itsehoitokeinoja.
xxx/ellauri126.html on line 837: Kysyvät retorisesti ylikärpät Minna ja Teija. Ne yrittävät höynäyttää hölmöjä britti Tony Robbinsilta lainatuilla höynäytyxillä.
xxx/ellauri126.html on line 839: Katsoin tässä päivänä muutamana Netflixin dokumenttielokuvaa Tony Robbins: I am not your guru, joka nostatti jälleen kerran pohtimaan oman itsen motivoinnin, omien uskomusten, totuttujen kaavojen, mielen tiedostamattomien lauseiden ja omien pelkojen tiedostamisen merkitystä.
xxx/ellauri126.html on line 848: Mut meneehänse toisinkin päin: kun on nälkänen ja väsynyt niin vituttaa. Tunti Netflixiä kyllä helpottaa, vaixe olis vaan kissavideoita eikä Tony Robbinsin typerä paasaus.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 53: "Trees" is frequently included in poetry anthologies and has been set to music several times—including a popular rendition by Oscar Rasbach, performed by singers Nelson Eddy, Robert Merrill, and Paul Robeson.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 60: However, Kilmer's eldest son, Kenton, declares that the poem does not apply to any one tree—that it could apply equally to any. "Trees" was written in an upstairs bedroom at the family's home in Mahwah, New Jersey, that "looked out down a hill, on our well-wooded lawn". Kenton Kilmer stated that while his father was "widely known for his affection for trees, his affection was certainly not sentimental—the most distinguished feature of Kilmer's property was a colossal woodpile outside his home". The house stood in the middle of a forest and what lawn it possessed was obtained only after Kilmer had spent months of weekend toil in chopping down trees, pulling up stumps, and splitting logs. Kilmer's neighbors had difficulty in believing that a man who could do that could also be a poet.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 86: A nest of robins in her hair; Iisisti nielaisee koko kapineen.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 112: When Nabokov died in 1977, The New York Times hailed him as “a giant in the world of literature.” Two of his novels, “Lolita” and “Pale Fire,” landed on the Modern Library’s 1998 list of the best English novels of the 20th century. His legions of fans regard Nabokov’s failure to win a Nobel Prize as one of the great literary travesties of the 20th century.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 114: Only now, 40 years after his death, are some critics daring to suggest that many of his 18 novels are mediocre at best and that his masterpiece, “Lolita,” is a gruesome celebration of pedophile rape. Moreover the cherubic writer known to us from famous Life magazine photo shoots, jauntily brandishing his butterfly net in the Tetons or the Alps, proves to be a nasty piece of work. Distasteful people can do wonderful work — Pablo Picasso was no walk in the park — but their art doesn’t excuse their obnoxious behavior.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 116: There are currently five scholarly journals devoted to Nabokov studies. His allusive style and trilingual (English, French, Russian) wordplay are catnip for academics, who endlessly parse challenging texts like “Pale Fire” — a novel in verse, followed by obscurantist commentary — finding new apercus tailor-made for small-journal publication. Nabokov’s apotheosis in academe is quite ironical, because he and his close friend, the literary critic Edmund Wilson, shared an icy disdain for the ivory tower. They viewed universities as ATMs, handy because there were so many of them, and because they were flush with cash. Nabokov, who arrived in the United States penniless in 1940, had to rely on teaching assignments at Wellesley and Cornell to feed his family for 15 years. The moment “Lolita” made him financially independent, he fled Cornell for Switzerland and never set foot in a classroom again.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 120: In his lifetime, Nabokov received many contrary and often puzzled reviews. The Hollywood producer Robert Evans famously flew to Switzerland in 1968 to read an advance copy of the novel “Ada” in one day. “It was torture,” he recalled. Dwight Macdonald hated “Pale Fire” on behalf of Partisan Review, calling it “unreadable . . . too clever by half . . . Philistine . . . false” — and he hadn’t even finished his first paragraph!
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 134: Nabokov’s attacks on his fellow Russian novelist Boris Pasternak were anything but amusing. The moment that Pasternak won the Nobel Prize for “Doctor Zhivago” in 1958, Nabokov waged a bitter, personal campaign against Pasternak, a nonstop stream of vitriol.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 135: Having won the much-coveted Nobel, and now supplanting “Lolita” on the American best-seller lists, “Zhivago” drove Nabokov bonkers.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 136: Nabokov clearly had an idee fixe about (undeserving?) Russian writers winning the Nobel Prize. Like Alexander Solzhenitsyn, whose work he dismissed as “juicy journalese.”
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 138: Plenty of monsters make great art, and many of their names emblazon lists of Nobelists, poet laureates, and so. And there is no doubt that Nabokov created great art, in two languages, like Joseph Conrad, whom he predictably disdained. (“A collection of glorified cliches.”) His achievements speak volumes. If only he hadn’t been such a jerk.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 140: This chapter gives a brief history of the émigré travelogue in and about America from Alexis de Tocqueville to Simone de Beauvoir, by way of introducing the four authors studied in this book: Vladimir Nabokov, Robert Frank, Alfred Hitchcock and Wim Wenders. Elsa Court argues that the outsider’s perspective has shaped representations of modern America through restless mobility, drawing a portrait of the modern highway shaped by the needs and cravings of the motorist. In the context of mobilities studies’ recent embrace of the humanities, Court makes an important case for the re-examination of the fixed places designed to facilitate motion—motel, gasoline station, roadside restaurant, as well as signage and memorials—and the roadside’s redesignation from so-called non-place to modern American topos.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 276: obFgcmyfV5bgofZPMNlz2olhv8-RjRlDPPtQyLd5FCsjC9CVh5EXjKAHbdwSM3YML5dl-=w1200-h630-p-k-no-nu" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 306: Romaani sijoittuu Koillis-Indianaan. Suurin osa toiminnasta tapahtuu joko Limberlostissa tai sen ympäristössä tai läheisessä kuvitteellisessa kaupungissa Onabashassa. Romaanin päähenkilö Elorna Cumstick on köyhtynyt nuori nainen, joka asuu lesken äitinsä Katharine Cumstickin kanssa Limberlostin laidalla. Elorna kasvot kylmä laiminlyödä hänen äitinsä, nainen, joka tuntee tuhoutunut miehensä kuoleman, Robert Cumstick, joka hukkui juoksuhiekkaan suolla. Katharine syyttää Elornaa hänen kuolemastaan, koska hänen aviomiehensä kuoli, kun hän synnytti tyttärensä eikä voinut tulla hänen pelastukseensa. Cumstickit ansaitsevat rahaa imemällä munia ja muita maataloustuotteita, mutta rouva Cumstick kieltäytyy kaatamasta yksittäistä puuta metsästä tai kaivelemasta öljyä, kuten ympäröivät naapurit tekevät, vaikka lisätulot tekisivät heidän elämänsä helpompaa.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 311: Ensinnäkin, kun hän on menestynyt lukiossa muutaman vuoden, hän haluaa viulunsoiton, kuten hänen isänsä oli tehnyt. Margaret Sinton pystyy hankkimaan hänelle saman viulun, jota Robert Cumstick soitti, ja Elorna tulee siihen taitavasti. Hän tietää, että hänen äitinsä vihaa viulua tietämättä miksi, joten hänen on salattava taitonsa.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 350: Margaret Sinton muuttuu suloisesta, arasta naisesta oikeutetuksi kosijaksi huomatessaan, että rouva Cumstick iski Elornaa kasvoihin; Sintonit ovat menettäneet taudista kaksi pientä tyttöä, ja he kohtelevat Elornaa toisena lapsena tai ainakin veljentytärna. Maggie Sinton kertoo raivokkaasti rouva Cumstickille, mitä Katharine ei ole koskaan halunnut tietää: että hänen aviomiehensä Robert Cumstick valmistautui huijaamaan häntä kuoli-iltana.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 371: Unsurprisingly, (mostly male) scientists have done gobs of research trying to figure out what women want in men. But they have spent much less time uncovering the reverse: what makes women attractive to men. Let's not even get started on the dearth of research on what men find attractive in other men, or women in other women.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 375: Just a quick walk through those 7 unsurprising outward qualities before continuing: 1) Face 2) Mouth 3) Boobs 4) Waist 5) Hips 6) Butt 7) Cunt. Wait, there's more come to think of it: 8) Thighs 9) Legs 10) Hair 11) Pubic hair 12) Cleavage 13) Hands 14) Skin 15) Teeth 16) Smile 17) Laugh 18) Voice ... Longum est omnia enumerari. Sorry, but we gotta move on.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 418: Nobody likes a bitch, particularly one that is just outright nasty.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 471: Poliitikko Sebastian Tynkkynen juhli homobaarissa: tanssi miehen kanssa! Perussuomalaisten entinen varapuheenjohtaja ja Big Brother -tähti Sebastian Tynkkynen juhli toissa perjantain ja lauantain välisenä yönä (6.8.) tummaihoisen miehen kanssa helsinkiläisessä DTM-ravintolassa. - Sebastian viihtyi miehen kanssa tanssilattialla ja myöhemmin pukilla. Tynkkynen ei anna neekerien nukkua. Piti meteliä elokapinoizioiden teltan ulkopuolella. Se olis pitänyt heittää jorpakkoon telttakeppeineen ja ämyreineen pitkältäsillalta.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 496: 4. Why do Silk’s colleagues fail to defend him? Why would highly educated academics—people trained to weigh evidence carefully and to be aware of the complex subtleties of any object of study—so readily believe the absurd stories concocted to disgrace Coleman Silk? Why does Ernestine describe Athena College as “a hotbed of ignorance”?
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 506: Kuka vitun Ernestine? Tottakai Walter oli oikeassa ja Pili väärässä. Pili möi isoäitinsä tullaxeen kuuluisaxi jenkkijulkkixexi, mutta Noobelipa meni samanrotuiselle mutta vanhemmalle Saul Bellowille, hähä. Yli sadasta noobelistista on 16 halkiohaaroja. Jotain rajaa sentään, tuumii Zuckermann. Monikohan on juutalaisia? Yli puolet ainakin on saaneet palkintonsa poliittisista näkökohdista.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 522: Like Bassanio, he is willing to prefer Antonio’s life to his newly-acquired wife’s. The law-clerk manages to convince him to give his wedding ring as a gift of thanks in return, which leads to some problems on his return to Belmont, as he had sworn to Nerissa that he would never remove it. He gives away that Bassanio has done much the same.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 627: If the Porlock interruption was a fiction, it would parallel the famous "letter from a friend" that interrupts Chapter XIII of Coleridge's Biographia Literaria just as he was beginning a 100-page exposition of the nature of the imagination. It was admitted much later that the "friend" was the author himself. In that case, the invented letter solved the problem that Coleridge found little receptiveness for his philosophy in the England of that time.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 643: Weiss nimisiä psykoanalysteja on netissä vähintään 4: Edoardo Weiss, Joseph Weiss (Control mastery theoryn kexijä), ja vähemmän maineikkaat Robert Weiss ja James Weiss. Mutta vittuilun kohteena on todennäköisemmin Melanie Klein, joka tutki pedofiilejä. Se oli menettänyt 2 lasta pedofiileille (no ei oikeesti), ja kuoli peräsuolen syöpään (serve her right!)
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 657: My name is Georgia Tarrant, and I am a clinical psychologist. In everyday life, my professional obligations seem to predominate over my personal life. It's as if work takes up more and more of the time I'd love to devote to my love life, our family, or even a moment of leisure.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 693: Kyllä Vladimirtä harmitti kun jutku Pasternakin paxu kirja (ja leffa!) möi paremmin. Ja se sai vielä poliittisen noobelin. Tshort vazmi!
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 715: Thomas Rowley (1721–1796) was a famous poet of Vermont, known both as the spokesman for Ethan Allen and dubbed “The Bard of the Green Mountains.” During his lifetime and before the American Revolution, his poetry gained the reputation with the catchphrase of "Setting the Balls on Fire." Rowley's poetry actually focused not only on politics, but also on the pleasantness and rustic nature of pioneer life, with humor and witty observations. For example, in another poetic inventory of his "estate", he sums up that he has virtually nothing, but still he was independent and happy.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 732: line ("A thing of beauty is a joy for ever") is quoted by Mary Poppins in the 1964 Disney movie, while she pulls out a potted plant from her bag. It is also referenced by Willy Wanka in the film Willy Wanka & the Chocolate Factory upon introducing the Wankamobile. https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/List_of_people_claimed_to_be_immortal_in_myth_and_legend
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 743: Endymion received scathing criticism after its release, and Keats himself noted its diffuse and unappealing style. Keats did not regret writing it, as he likened the process to leaping into the ocean to become more acquainted with his surroundings; in a poem to J. A. Hessey, he expressed that "I was never afraid of failure; for I would sooner fail than not be among the greatest." However, he did feel regret in its publishing, saying "it is not without a feeling of regret that I make it public." Not all critics disliked the work. eg. the poet Thomas Hood. Henry Morley said, "The song of Endymion throbs throughout with a noble poet's sense of all that his art means for him. What mechanical defects there are in it may even serve to quicken our sense of the youth and freshness of this voice of aspiration." Meaning: Dig it mon. Endymionin jälkeen Keaz kommentoi sen vastaanottoa seuraavasti.
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 758: Drest as though bold Robin Hood Samanlaisista 1K sukkahousuista
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 759: Would, with his maid Marian, Kuin Robin Hoodin sankarit ja Marian,
xxx/ellauri127.html on line 763: Nobody knew whither, till ongenkoukusta, ei kukaan tiennyt minne,
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 67: "Käsi" on sydämen näkyvä osa. Jacob Bosshart M FUCK!
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 105: Vaakku ilmeisesti piti vastustelevista runotytöistä. Sama predilektio näkyy mom and son videoissa: "mami" pyristelee vastaan alussa, mutta panee vastaan tarmokkaasti loppupeleissä. Haista-paska kappalainen Capellanus näyttää olleen Vaakun lemppareita. Ruma Honoré de Balzac oli kanssa kova panomies, tosin se sai työntää vasta maxettuaan runsaasti. Paul Bourget oli varsinainen pahis, kuten jo tiedetään. Näissä hanuissa on hurjasti narsisteja. Chardonne eli puteli-Jaakko oli Vaakun poliittinen virkaveli. Cicero oli tyhmä snobi kikhernekauppias. Disraeli Tears oli poikkeuxellisesti hölmö jutku. Dosto komppaa Catullusta Karamazoveissa tän suositun vihaava rakkaus-aiheen suhteen. Duclos näyttää olleen paskiainen miehexeen. Hemmetin paljon on näitä koiraan lisääntymisstrategia-aiheita, missä rakkautta piisaa just niin kauan että pääsee luukulle, ja sitten alkaa jo huooh ikävystyttää. Vaakulla on vitun vähän ylipäänsä naisia muutakuin puheenaiheena. Joubert on nyysinyt ton "ei 2x samaa" penseen ihailemaltaan Rochefoucauldilta (tai vastoin päin). Vaakulla ja Tommilla on samojakin töräyxiä respektiivisissä kokoelmissa. Nietschen penseet naimisesta on niin heikkoja ettei viizi edes mainita. Sen kokemuxet siitä oli aika rajallisia. Mitä jää viivan alle kun Shawin supistus on tehty? Minielefantin kärsä. Tosta tottumuxen osuudesta rakkaudessa näyttää M/F töräyttäjät ottavan ihan vastakkaisia kantoja. Koiraiden kannalta on toi uutuudenviehätys tietty tärkeä. Jokainen uusi reikä on uusi tilaisuus. Riippumahainen Ball-sack ei kyllä tiennytkään mitään häveliäisyydestä. Sen Contes drolatiques on pitkästyttävä. Disdraeli saa lisää haukkuja albumissa 243.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 112: Andreas Capellanus, appelé en français par une traduction de son nom André le Chapelain, a écrit au XIIe siècle un traité intitulé ordinairement De Amore, et souvent traduit, de façon quelque peu fautive, Traité de l'Amour courtois, bien que son ton réaliste, voire cynique indique que, dans une certaine mesure, il se veut un antidote à l'amour courtois. On ne sait rien de la vie d'André le Chapelain, mais on suppose qu'il faisait partie de la cour de Marie de France, et qu'il était probablement d'origine française. On a soutenu que De Amore codifie la vie sociale et sexuelle de la cour d'Aliénor à Poitiers, entre 1170 et 1174, mais il a été manifestement écrit au moins dix ans plus tard et, semble-t-il, à Troyes. Il traite de plusieurs thèmes spécifiques qui faisaient l'objet d'un débat poétique entre troubadours et trobairitz à la fin du XIIe siècle.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 116: Jakob Bosshart (* 7. August 1862 im Weiler Stürzikon, Gemeinde Oberembrach, Kanton Zürich; † 18. Februar 1924 in Clavadel, Gemeinde Davos) war ein Schweizer Lehrer und Schriftsteller. Jakob Bosshart war, wie er schrieb, der Sohn «geplagter, aber aufstrebender Bauersleute». Er wuchs auf einem einsamen Hof zwischen dem Töss- und dem Glattal im Zürcher Unterland auf. Nach dem Besuch der Sekundarschule absolvierte er von 1882 bis 1885 das Lehrerbildungsseminar in Küsnacht und wurde für kurze Zeit Lehrer in Deutschland. 1915 musste er aufgrund einer fortgeschrittenen Tuberkulose in ein Sanatorium im Hochtal von Clavadel bei Davos überführt werden, wo er 1924 starb.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 128: He maintained a close friendship with Queen Victoria, who in 1876 elevated him to Earl of Beaconsfield. Disraeli´s second term was dominated by the Eastern Question—the slow decay of the Ottoman Empire and the desire of other European powers, such as Russia, to gain at its expense. Disraeli arranged for the British to purchase a major interest in the Suez Canal Company in Egypt. In 1878, faced with Russian victories against the Ottomans, he worked at the Congress of Berlin to obtain peace in the Balkans at terms favourable to Britain and unfavourable to Russia, its longstanding enemy. This diplomatic victory over Russia established Disraeli as one of Europe´s leading statesmen.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 135: C’était, dit Jean-Jacques Rousseau, « un homme droit et adroit ». « Il faisait profession, écrit La Harpe, d’une franchise brusque qui ne déplaisait point […] Soit habitude, soit dessein, il gardait ce ton même dans la louange et l’on peut juger qu’elle n’y perdait pas. Il avait d’ailleurs un fonds de droiture qui le rendait incapable de plier son opinion ni sa liberté à aucun intérêt ni aucune politique ; et cependant ce ne fut point un obstacle à son avancement, parce qu’il n’offensa jamais l’amour-propre des gens de lettres, et qu’il sut intéresser en sa faveur celui des gens en place. » Duclos avait beaucoup d’esprit et une grande liberté de parole ; on cite de lui nombre de mots heureux.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 142: John Fletcher (1579–1625) was a Jacobean playwright. Following William Shakespeare as house playwright for the King's Men, he was among the most prolific and influential dramatists of his day; during his lifetime and in the early Restoration, his fame rivalled Shakespeare's. He collaborated on writing plays with Francis Beaumont, and also with Shakespeare on two plays.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 153: Walter "Savage" Landor (1775–1864) oli englantilainen kirjailija. Hän oli niin kiivasluontoinen että hänet erotettiin sekä Rugbyn koulusta että myöhemmin Oxfordin yliopistosta. Hän siirtyi Lontooseen, missä hän julkaisi englannin ja latinan kielellä ensimmäiset runoelmansa. Landorin ensimmäinen laajahko runoteos oli Gebir (1798). Tässä, kuten Landorin myöhemmissäkin runoissa, huomaa järvikoulun ja varsinkin Byronin ällöömän Robert Southeyn vaikutusta. Landorin draamat Count Julian (1811), Andrea of Hungary ja Giovanni of Naples (1839) eivät menestyneet näyttämöllä, ne olivatkin aivan paskoja. Landor eli ahtaissa taloudellisissa oloissa enimmäkseen Walesissa vuoteen 1805, jolloin hän isänsä kuoltua peri kokonaisen omaisuuden. Hän lähti 1808 Espanjaan taistelemaan ranskalaisia vastaan, värväsi omilla varoillaan soturijoukon ja joutui siksi taas taloudelliseen ahdinkoon. Hän siirtyi 1815 Italiaan, missä hän asui 20 vuotta, loppuiällään taloudellisten huolien rasittamana, joihin hän ilman Robert Browningin apua olisi sortunut. Samoin kuin lordi Byron ja Leigh Hunt, myös Landor oli intohimoinen vapauden (= britti-imperialismin) rakastaja, ja vapauden asialle hän oli valmis uhraamaan omaisuutensa. Landorin pääteos on Imaginary conversations of imaginary literary men and statesmen, jonka kaksi edellistä osaa ilmestyivät 1824 ja kolme jälkimmäistä 1829. Teos on täynnä tekosyvällisiä ajatuksia esitettynä kauniilla, dramaattisesti voimakkaalla, joskaan ei aina helposti tajuttavalla proosatyylillä. Eeva Kilpi on suomentanut osittain runon "On his seventy-fifth birthday" julkaisuun Tätä runoa en unohda. Pertti Niemisen suomentama runo "En käynyt kiistaan, hillizin izeni" on julkaistu kokoelmassa Kuu kultainen terälehti.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 168: Jean Paulilla on aina ollut ihailijansa ja hän kuuluu saksalaisen kirjallisuuden tärkeimpiin nimiin. Hän oli monille romantiikan ajan kirjailijoille tärkeä esikuva. Lisäksi hänen kirjoillaan oli suuri merkitys eräille romanttisille säveltäjille, esimerkiksi Robert Schumannille ja Johannes Brahmsille. Jostain syystä siihen liitetään adjektiivit "humorous" ja "sentimental". Oliko se siis jonkinlainen huromisti?
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 182: Madame de Staël (/stal/) ou bien Anne-Louise-Germaine Necker, baronne de Staël-Holstein, était une romancière, épistolière et philosophe genevoise et française née le 22 avril 1766 à Paris où elle est morte le 14 juillet 1817. Issue d´une famille de protestants valdo-genevois richissimes, fille du ministre des finances de Louis XVI Jacques Necker, elle est élevée dans un milieu de gens de lettres. Elle épouse, en 1786, le baron Erik Magnus Staël von Holstein, ambassadeur du roi Gustave III de Suède auprès de la cour de France à Versailles. Le couple se séparera en 1800. Devenue baronne de Staël, elle mène une vie sentimentale agitée et entretient en particulier une relation orageuse avec Benjamin Constant, écrivain et homme politique franco-vaudois rencontré en 1794. Entretemps, sa réputation littéraire et intellectuelle s´est affirmée grâce à trois essais philosophiques que sont les Lettres sur les ouvrages et le caractère de Jean-Jacques Rousseau (1788), De l´influence des passions sur le bonheur de l´individu et des nations (1796) et De la littérature considérée dans ses rapports avec les institutions sociales (1800). Favorable à la Révolution française et aux idéaux de 1789 au debut, elle adopte une position critique dès 1791 et ses idées d´une monarchie constitutionnelle la font considérer comme une opposante gênante par les maîtres de la révolution. Malgré le statut de diplomate de son mari, elle doit se réfugier auprès de son père en Suisse à plusieurs reprises. Interdite de séjour sur le sol français par Napoléon Bonaparte qui la considère comme un obstacle à sa politique, elle s´installe en Suisse dans le château familial de Coppet qui sert de lieu principal de rencontres au groupe du même nom, et d´où elle fait paraître Delphine (1802), Corinne ou l´Italie (1807) et De l´Allemagne (1810/1813b). Ses œuvres fictionnelles majeures, dans lesquelles elle représente des femmes victimes des contraintes sociales qui les enchaînent, sont Delphine (1802) et Corinne ou l´Italie (1807).
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 186: Rahel Varnhagen von Ense, geborene Levin (* 19. Mai 1771 in Berlin; † 7. März 1833 ebenda, auch Robert bzw. Robert-Tornow, angenommener Familienname ab Mitte der 1790er-Jahre, Friedericke Antonie, Taufname ab 1814), war eine deutsche Schriftstellerin und Salonnière jüdischer Herkunft. Rahel Varnhagen gehörte der romantischen Epoche an und vertrat zugleich Positionen der europäischen Aufklärung. Sie trat für die jüdische Emanzipation und die Emanzipation der Frauen ein.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 190: Rahel Levin wurde 1771 als älteste Tochter des jüdischen Bankiers und Juwelenhändlers Levin Markus (auch Loeb Cohen, 1723–1790), und seiner Frau Heichen, genannt Chaie Levin, geborene Tobias (verstorben 1809) im (nicht mehr existenten) Eckhaus der Spandauer Straße und der Königstraße in Berlin, dem damaligen Rathaus gegenüber, geboren.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 192: Während ihre Brüder höhere Schulen besuchten (Ludwig Robert war Schüler des Französischen Gymnasiums) und eine kaufmännische Ausbildung absolvierten, wurde Rahel von Hauslehrern unterrichtet. Sie lernte Französisch, Englisch und Italienisch, erhielt Klavier- und Tanzunterricht und unternahm früh Reisen nach Breslau (1794), Teplitz (1796) und Paris (1800). Ihre Allgemeinbildung übertraf bei weitem die einer durchschnittlichen christlichen Mädchenerziehung. Im böhmischen Kurbad Karlsbad begegnete sie 1795 erstmals Goethe, den sie als Schriftsteller außerordentlich verehrte, und der von ihr urteilte, sie sei „ein Mädchen von außerordentlichem Verstand“, „stark in jeder ihrer Empfindungen und dabei leicht in ihren Äußerungen“, „kurz, was ich eine schöne Seele nennen möchte“.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 198: Rahel Levins Schwester Rose heiratete am 8. Februar 1801 den niederländischen Juristen Carel Asser (1780–1836), der seit 1799 als Rechtsanwalt in Den Haag praktizierte. Da Rahel Levin eine für sie in Breslau arrangierte Ehe mit einem entfernten Verwandten ablehnte, blieb sie in ihrer ersten Lebenshälfte abhängig von ihrer Familie. Erst im Winter 1808/1809 verließ sie das Elternhaus, und zog, was für eine unverheiratete und nicht verwitwete Frau damals äußerst ungewöhnlich war, in eine eigene Wohnung in Charlottenburg (im Trenck’schen Haus in der Charlottenstraße Nr. 32, zwei Treppen hoch). Von 1793 bis zum Herbst 1808, „in ihrer glanzvollsten Zeit“ (K. A. Varnhagen), bewohnte die Familie Levin-Robert das Haus No. 54 in der Jägerstraße beim Gendarmenmarkt. Hier fanden vor allem in der Zeit um 1800 gesellige Zusammenkünfte der mit dem Haus befreundeten Zeitgenossen statt.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 200: Von 1793 bis zum Herbst 1808, „in ihrer glanzvollsten Zeit“ (K. A. Varnhagen), bewohnte die Familie Levin-Robert das Haus No. 54 in der Jägerstraße beim Gendarmenmarkt. Hier fanden vor allem in der Zeit um 1800 gesellige Zusammenkünfte der mit dem Haus befreundeten Zeitgenossen statt. (→ siehe Artikel Salon der Rahel Varnhagen). Dominiert wurden diese Treffen von den (meist jüdischen) Gastgeberinnen wie Henriette Herz, Amalie Beer oder eben Rahel Robert-Tornow. Die „Salonnièren“ selbst nannten solche Abende „Thees“, „Geselligkeit“, oder sie setzten einen wiederkehrenden Wochentag (z. B. „Montage“) als Name für die Einladung fest. Von „Salon“ ist bei Rahel Varnhagen nur im Zusammenhang mit den sehr prächtigen Empfängen der Fanny von Arnstein in Wien die Rede; erst viele Jahrzehnte später sprach man in Berlin von „Salons“.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 204: Neben anderen Liebeleien erlebte Rahel Robert, die sehr kritisch über die bürgerliche Ehe zwischen Mann und Frau dachte, auch das Scheitern ihres Verlöbnisses mit dem spanischen Gesandten Rafael Eugenio Rufino d’Urquijo Ybaizal y Taborga (1769–1839), der sie mit Streitszenen quälte. Was d’Urquijo betrifft, den sie als unbeherrscht und eifersüchtig erlebt hatte, trug sie ihm nichts nach: „Er hat mich zu sehr, zu oft, und immerweg beleidigt; gut bin ich ihm auch“, schrieb sie an Karl August Varnhagen, mit dem sie inzwischen seit fünf Jahren verlobt war. Am 15. Juli 1814 heiratete d’Urquijo in Berlin Louise von Fuchs (1792–1862); neun Wochen später, am 27. September, heiratete Rahel Robert, ebenfalls wieder in Berlin, den vierzehn Jahre jüngeren Diplomaten, Historiker und Publizisten Varnhagen, der in Österreich den Namenszusatz seiner adligen Vorfahren „von Ense“ angenommen hatte. Das geschah zu einer Zeit, als er noch Gefahr lief, als gebürtiger Düsseldorfer von Napoleons Truppen rekrutiert zu werden. Später wurde der Adelstitel, den beide Ehepartner trugen, durch ein Patent des preußischen Königs Friedrich Wilhelm III. bestätigt. Kurz zuvor, am 23. September, war Rahel zum evangelischen Christentum konvertiert. Bei der Hochzeit war der gemeinsame Freund Friedrich de la Motte Fouqué zugegen.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 208: Rahel Varnhagen verstand sich nicht als Schriftstellerin im professionellen Sinn und nahm wenig Anteil am Literaturbetrieb, obwohl sie häufig dazu ermuntert wurde. Sie pflegte vor allem die Gattungen Tagebuch (wobei Exzerpte aus Büchern oft zu kritischen Essays ausgebaut wurden), Aphorismus und Brief (rund 6000 Briefe von ihr sind bekannt), seltener Gedichte. Trotzdem gehört sie zu den bedeutendsten Vertreterinnen und Vorbildern der im 19. Jahrhundert aufblühenden Frauenliteratur, die sich nicht nur über Lyrik, Romane, Theaterstücke und Opernlibretti erstreckte, sondern oft kleine, intimere Formen wählte. Der Wert ihres Schreibens resultiert aus der Dokumentation historischer und kultureller Vorgänge, sowie aus brillantem Stil und politischer Weitsicht.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 210: Rahel Varnhagen war im Alter von 61 Jahren verstorben. An ihrer Pflege in den letzten Wochen beteiligte sich Bettina von Arnim, die ihr, freilich ohne Erfolg, eine homöopathische Behandlung empfohlen hatte. Aus Sorge, scheintot beigesetzt zu werden, verfügte sie, nach ihrem Tod 20 Jahre lang in einem Doppelsarg mit Sichtfenstern oberirdisch aufgebahrt zu werden. Der Sarg stand 34 Jahre lang in einer Halle auf dem Friedhofsquartier vor dem Halleschen Tor, bis Rahel Varnhagen von Ense 1867 auf Veranlassung ihrer Nichte Ludmilla Assing neben ihrem neun Jahre zuvor verstorbenen Gatten auf dem Dreifaltigkeitsfriedhof I beigesetzt wurde
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 257: Ilman sitä maailma olis hautakammio. Robert Browning M FUCK!
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 282: Äiti tekee pojasta miestä 20v, miniä hölmön 20 min. Robert Frost M FUCK!
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 289: Rakkaudessa noudatetaan amatöörisääntöjä. Ei motata vyön alle (HAHA). Robert Graves M FUCK!
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 295: Gerry Ford ei tuntenut vaimoa faceliftin jälkeen. Bob Hope M FUCK!
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 322: Viehätys on sitä kun mies tietää silmämitalla et nainen on nainen. Gina Lollobrigida M FUCK!
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 411: Reik tapasi Freudin ensi kertaa vuonna 1910, ja hänet otettiin Wienin psykoanalyyttisen yhdistyksen jäseneksi seuraavana vuonna. Freud tuki Reikia usean vuoden ajan, kun tämä opiskeli psykoanalyytikoksi ja kävi Karl Abrahamin koulutusanalyysissa. Reikin ja Freudin välinen ystävyys jatkui Freudin kuolemaan (1939) saakka. Vuonna 1915 Reik julkaisi tutkimuksen Die Pubertätsriten der Wilden, jossa psykoanalyysia sovellettiin kansatieteeseen. Hän julkaisi tutkimuksia myös uskontopsykologiasta ja kriminologiasta. Hän esitteli tiedostumattoman tunnustamispakon ja rangaistuksenkaipuun käsitteet teoksessaan Geständniszwang und Strafbedürfnis: Probleme der Psychoanalyse und der Kriminologie (1925).
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 433: Marya Mannes, in full Maria von Heimburg Mannes, (born Nov. 14, 1904, New York, N.Y., U.S.—died Sept. 13, 1990, San Francisco, Calif.), American writer and critic, known for her caustic but insightful observations of American life.. Mannes was the daughter of Clara Damrosch Mannes and David Mannes, both distinguished musicians. She was educated privately and benefited from the cultural ...
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 442: Jennie Lee (born Virginia Lee Hicks, October 23, 1928 – March 24, 1990) was an American stripper, burlesque entertainer, pin-up model, Union activist, and a minor role movie actress, who performed several striptease acts in nightclubs during the 1950s and 1960s. She was also known as "the Bazoom Girl", "the Burlesque Version of Jayne Mansfield", and "Miss 44 and Plenty More".
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 449: Börne war der Sohn von Jakob Baruch und dessen Ehefrau Julie, geborene Gumpertz. Jakob Baruch war als Händler tätig und vertrat die Stadt Frankfurt auf dem Wiener Kongress. Ludwig Börne wurde zunächst von Hauslehrern unterrichtet und trat im Jah 1800 in das Internat von Wilhelm Friedrich Hezel ein, um die Voraussetzungen für das vom Vater gewünschte Medizinstudium zu erfüllen.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 492: Maurice Bedel, né le 30 décembre 1883 à Paris et mort le 15 octobre 1954 à La Genauraye à Thuré (Vienne)1, est un écrivain, essayiste et journaliste français. Aika lailla Urpo Harvan näköinen. Docteur en médecine, la thèse de Maurice Bedel est consacrée aux obsessions périodiques et se tourne vers la psychiatrie. Il publie ses premiers poèmes sous le pseudonyme de Gabriel Senilis : Le Cahier de Phane. Couronné par le prix Goncourt en 1927 pour son premier roman Jérôme 60° latitude nord, il est élu en 1948 président de la Société des gens de lettres.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 494: Peter Alexander Freiherr von Ustinov (16 April 1921 – 28 March 2004) was born at 45 Belsize Park, London, England. His father, Jona Freiherr von Ustinov, was of Russian, German, Polish, and Ethiopian Jewish descent. Peter´s paternal grandfather was Baron Plato von Ustinov, a Russian noble, and his grandmother was Magdalena Hall, of mixed German-Ethiopian-Jewish origin. Peter was a British actor, filmmaker and writer and a fixture on television talk shows and lecture circuits for much of his career. Peter oli kuraverinen äiskän puolelta.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 499: Alain Resnais [alɛ̃ ʁɛnɛ]n 1 est un réalisateur français, également scénariste et monteur, né le 3 juin 1922 à Vannes (Morbihan) et mort le 1er mars 2014 à Neuilly-sur-Seine (Hauts-de-Seine). Réalisateur d'Hiroshima mon amour (1959) et de L'Année dernière à Marienbad (1961), Alain Resnais est rapidement considéré comme l'un des grands représentants du Nouveau cinéma (Nouvelle Vague) et comme un des pères de la modernité cinématographique européenne à l'instar de Roberto Rossellini, Ingmar Bergman et Michelangelo Antonioni dans sa manière de remettre en cause la grammaire du cinéma classique et de déconstruire la narration linéaire.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 501: Karl Murdock Bowman (November 4, 1888 – March 2, 1973) was a pioneer in the study of psychiatry. From 1944 to 1946 he was the president of the American Psychiatric Association. His work in alcoholism, schizophrenia, and homosexuality is particularly often cited. In 1953, in "The Problem of Homosexuality," co-authored with Bernice Engle, he argued for multiple causes, including genetics, but proposed that castration be studied as a cure. However, in 1961 he appeared in the television documentary The Rejected presenting the viewpoint that homosexuality is not a mental illness and should be legalized.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 524: Robert von Ranke Graves (24 July 1895 – 7 December 1985) was a British poet, historical novelist, critic, and classicist. His father was Alfred Perceval Graves, a celebrated Irish poet and figure in the Gaelic revival; they were both Celticists and students of Irish mythology. Graves produced more than 140 works in his lifetime. His poems, his translations and innovative analysis of the Greek myths, his memoir of his early life—including his role in World War I—Good-Bye to All That, and his speculative study of poetic inspiration, The White Goddess, have never been out of print.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 529: André Maurois, pseudonyme d’Émile Salomon Wilhelm Herzog, né le 26 juillet 1885 à Elbeuf et mort le 9 octobre 1967 à Neuilly-sur-Seine, est un romancier, biographe, conteur et essayiste français.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 531: Il préfère en effet une carrière littéraire à la direction de l’usine familiale et s’illustre d’abord par des romans qui lui gagnent un public féminin : Climats, Les Roses de septembre. Il obtient un Prix d´Honneur au Concours général et passe sa licence de lettres. Sa première épouse fut Jane-Wanda de Szymkiewicz (Jeanine) (1892-1923), fille d’un comte polonais qui lui donnera trois enfants, deux garçons et une fille, Michelle1.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 548: Jean Anouilh (/a.nuj/) est un dramaturge et scénariste français né le 23 juin 1910 à Bordeaux (Gironde) et mort le 3 octobre 1987 à Lausanne (Suisse). Son œuvre théâtrale commencée en 1932 est particulièrement abondante et variée : elle est constituée de nombreuses comédies souvent grinçantes et d´œuvres à la tonalité dramatique ou tragique comme sa pièce la plus célèbre, Antigone, réécriture moderne de la pièce de Sophocle. Mulla taitaa olla se.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 557: 1881 starb seine Mutter Charlotte an Tuberkulose. Morgenstern hatte sich offenbar bei ihr angesteckt. Bald darauf wurde er, ohne in der frühen Kindheit regelmäßigen Schulunterricht erhalten zu haben, seinem Paten Arnold Otto Meyer, einem Kunsthändler in Hamburg, zur Erziehung anvertraut, worunter er jedoch litt. Ein Jahr später kehrte er nach München zurück und kam in ein Internat in Landshut. Dort wurde Körperstrafe eingesetzt, und er erfuhr Mobbing durch seine Mitschüler.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 563: Ab 1903 war er literarischer Lektor im Verlag von Bruno Cassirer, mit dem er freundschaftlich verbunden war. Er betreute und förderte dort u. a. Robert Walser. Zuvor war er Dramaturg bei Felix Bloch Erben. 1905 reiste er nach Wyk und hatte einen Sanatoriumsaufenthalt in Birkenwerder, der nicht zum gewünschten Erfolg führte. Zudem erschienen in diesem Jahr seine Galgenlieder und er las Fjodor Michailowitsch Dostojewski. Ein Jahr später reiste er aus gesundheitlichen Gründen in Kurorte in bayerischer, Tiroler und Schweizer Alpenlandschaft, nach Bad Tölz, Längenfeld, Obergurgl, Meran, Obermais, St. Vigil und Tenigerbad und beschäftigte sich mit Jakob Böhme, Fechner, Fichte, Hegel, Eckhart von Hochheim, Fritz Mauthner, Spinoza und Tolstoi.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 565: Im Januar 1909 schloss er bei Berliner Vorträgen Rudolf Steiners mit diesem eine enge und dauerhafte Freundschaft. Um Steiners Vorträge zu hören, reiste er noch im selben Jahr nach Düsseldorf, Koblenz, Kristiania, Kassel und München. Im Mai trat er einen Monat nach Margareta der von Steiner geführten Deutschen Sektion der Theosophischen Gesellschaft bei. Bei der folgenden Spaltung dieser Körperschaft 1912/1913 blieb er auf der Seite Steiners und wurde Mitglied der Anthroposophischen Gesellschaft. 1909 übersetzte er auch Knut Hamsun, besuchte den Internationalen Theosophischen Kongress in Budapest und seinen Vater in Wolfshau, er reiste mit Margareta in den Schwarzwald und nach Obermais. Dort erkrankte er, wohl auch infolge der zahlreichen Reisen, an einer schweren Bronchitis. Ein Arzt deutete bereits auf den kurz bevorstehenden Tod hin. Morgensterns Zustand verbesserte sich jedoch wieder, und so heirateten er und Margareta am 7. März 1910.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 582: Jean Rostand, né le 30 octobre 1894 à Paris (17e arrondissement) et mort le 4 septembre 1977 à Ville-d´Avray (Hauts-de-Seine), était un écrivain, moraliste, biologiste, historien des sciences et académicien français. Très intéressé par les origines de la vie, il étudie la biologie des batraciens (grenouilles, crapauds, tritons et autres), la parthénogenèse, l´action du froid sur les œufs, et promeut de multiples recherches sur l´hérédité. Avec conviction et enthousiasme, il s´efforce de vulgariser la biologie auprès d´un large public (il reçoit en 1959 le prix Kalinga de vulgarisation scientifique) et d´alerter l´opinion sur la gravité et des problèmes humains qu´elle pose. Considérant la biologie comme devant être porteuse d´une morale, il met en garde contre les dangers qui menacent les humains lorsqu´ils jouent aux apprentis sorciers, comme les tenants de l´eugénisme. Toutefois, Rostand soutient une forme d´« eugénisme 'positif' », approuvant certains écrits d´Alexis Carrel et la stérilisation des personnes atteintes de certaines formes graves de maladies mentales, ce qui fut rapproché, après la guerre, de la loi nazie de 1933, et lui fut reproché dans un contexte où l´eugénisme est une idéologie encore répandue avec des auteurs comme Julian Huxley, premier directeur de l´UNESCO (1946-1948).
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 592: ob3RzL3Byb2R1Y3RzLzQwMy80MDM0LzQwMzQzMDIvZ2VuZGVyX2NtLW8uanBn?1519146866" height=300px"/>
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 596: Max Ernst (2 April 1891 – 1 April 1976) was a German (naturalised American in 1948 and French in 1958) painter, sculptor, graphic artist, and poet. A prolific artist, Ernst was a primary pioneer of the Dada movement and surrealism. He had no formal artistic training, but his experimental attitude toward the making of art resulted in his invention of frottage—a technique that uses pencil rubbings of objects as a source of images—and grattage, an analogous technique in which paint is scraped across canvas to reveal the imprints of the objects placed beneath. He is also noted for his novels consisting of collages. Vitun tuhertaja. Onko hölmömpää kuin noi Maxin älynväläyxet? Se on yhtä puupää kuin Wolfram Rothin isäpuoli Ernst Rüdiger. Turmiolan Hannu on kyllä raapinut aforismikasaansa ihan pahnanpohjatkin. Oscar Wilden turauxet puolestaan on tyypillistä homopetteröintiä.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 601: Margaret Caroline Anderson (November 24, 1886 – October 19, 1973) was the American founder, editor and publisher of the art and literary magazine The Little Review, which published a collection of modern American, English and Irish writers between 1914 and 1929. The periodical is most noted for introducing many prominent American and British writers of the 20th century, such as Ezra Pound and T. S. Eliot in the United States, and publishing the first thirteen chapters of James Joyce's then-unpublished novel, Ulysses. A large collection of her papers on Gurdjieff's teaching is now preserved at Beinecke Rare Book and Manuscript Library, Yale University. She was blond, shapely, with lean ankles and a Scandinavian face. ... In 1916, Anderson met Jane Heap. The two became lovers. In early 1924, through Alfred Richard Orage, Anderson came to know of spiritual teacher George Ivanovitch Gurdjieff, and saw performances of his 'Sacred dances', first at the 'Neighbourhood Playhouse', and later at Carnegie Hall. Shortly after Gurdjieff's automobile accident, Anderson, along with Georgette Leblanc, Jane Heap and Monique Surrere, moved to France to visit him at Fountainebleau-Avon, where he had set up his institute at Château du Prieuré in Avon.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 603: The teachings of George Ivanovitch Gurdjieff played an important role in Anderson's life. Anderson met Gurdjieff in Paris and, together with Leblanc, began studies with him, focusing on his original teaching called The Fourth Way. Along with Katherine Mansfield and Jane Heap, she remains one of the most noted institutees of Gurdjieff´s, Institute for the Harmonious Development of Man, at Fontainebleau, near Paris, from October 1922 to 1924. Anderson studied with Gurdjieff in France until his death in October 1949, writing about him and his teachings in most of her books, most extensively in her memoir, The Unknowable Gurdjieff. By 1942 her relationship with Heap had cooled. Anderson sailed for the United States. Jane Heap had moved to London in 1935, where she led Gurdjieff study groups until her death in 1964. With her passage paid by Ernest Hemingway, Anderson met on the voyage Dorothy Caruso, widow of the singer and famous tenor Enrico Caruso. The two began a romantic relationship, and lived together until Dorothy´s death in 1955. Anderson returned to Le Cannet, and there she died of emphysema on October 19, 1973.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 627: Ellen Niit (sünninimi Ellen Hiob, kodanikunimi 1949–1958 Ellen Niit, 1958. aastast Ellen Kross; 13. juuli 1928 – 30. mai 2016) oli eesti kirjanik ja tõlkija. Ellen Niit sündis Tallinnas. Ta õppis Tallinnas, Tapal 1938–1943, Tallinna 4. Keskkoolis 1943–1947, Tartu Ülikooli keeleteaduskonnas eesti keelt ja kirjandust 1947–1952 ja Tartu Ülikooli aspirantuuris eesti lastekirjanduse alal 1952–1956. Ta töötas Tallinna Kirjanike Liidu luulekonsultandina 1956–1961, Eesti Televisiooni mittekoosseisulise toimetajana 1961–1963. Alates aastast 1963 oli Ellen Niit vabakutseline kirjanik.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 630: Maureen Patricia Duffy (born 21 October 1933) is an English poet, playwright, novelist and non-fiction author. Long an activist covering such issues as gay rights and animal rights, she campaigns especially on behalf of authors. She has received the Benson & Hedges Medal for her damn long writings.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 632: Axel Martin Fredrik Munthe, född 31 oktober 1857 i Oskarshamn, död 11 februari 1949 på Stockholms slott, var en svensk läkare och författare. Han var kronprinsessan, sedermera drottning, Victorias livläkare från 1893 och fram till hennes död 1930. Han är känd som skaparen av Villa San Michele på Capri. Axel Munthe var son till apotekaren Fredrik Munthe och Lovisa Ugarph. Enligt familjetraditionen tillhörde han en adelsätt från Flandern och senare Tyskland, först invandrad till Skåne. Tro om du vill.
xxx/ellauri128.html on line 637: As an undergraduate, Atkinson read Simone de Beauvoir´s The Second Sex, and struck up a correspondence with de Beauvoir, who suggested that she contact Betty Friedan. Atkinson became an early member of Friedan´s National Organization for Women. Atkinson´s time with the organization was tumultuous, including a row with the national leadership over her attempts to defend and promote Valerie Solanas and her SCUM Manifesto in the wake of the Andy Warhol shooting. In 1968 she left the organization because it would not confront issues like abortion and marriage inequalities. She founded the October 17th Movement, which later became The Feminists, a radical feminist group active until 1973. By 1971 she had written several pamphlets on feminism, was a member of the Daughters of Bilitis and was advocating specifically political lesbianism. "Sisterhood," Atkinson famously said, "is powerful. It kills mostly sisters." The Daughters of Bilitis / b ɪ ˈ l iː t ɪ s /, also called the DOB or the Daughters, was the first lesbian civil and political rights organization in the United States. Bilitis is not cholitis nor Kari Matihaldi disease, but a fictional companion of Sappho.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 43: In seiner frühen Studienzeit beschäftigte er sich u. a. mit Spiritismus, einem Gebiet, das damals, wie seine Biografin Deirdre Bair 2005 schrieb, «als mit der Psychiatrie verwandt» angesehen wurde. Sein Interesse für okkulte Phänomene wurde durch zwei unerklärliche parapsychologische Erscheinungen in seinem ersten Studiensemester geweckt: Ein plötzliches Zerreissen eines Tisches und sauberes Zerspringen eines Brotmessers habe er beobachtet.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 45: Jung spezialisierte sich auf Psychiatrie. Interesse an diesem Gebiet hatte er bereits aufgrund der Aufgaben seines Vaters Paul als Pastor und Konsulent der Psychiatrischen Universitätsklinik Basel (vermutlich von 1886/87 bis zu seinem Lebensende am 28. Januar 1896). Ausschlaggebend für Jungs Entscheidung war die Lektüre von Krafft-Ebings Lehrbuch der Psychiatrie für praktische Ärzte und Studierende, in dem Psychosen als «Krankheiten der Person» beschrieben werden, was für Jung «die beiden Ströme meines Interesses» als «gemeinsame[s] Feld der Erfahrung von biologischen und geistigen Tatsachen» verband. 1900 wurde Jung nach seinem Staatsexamen als Assistent von Eugen Bleuler in der Psychiatrischen Universitätsklinik Zürich in Zürich tätig. Während dieser Zeit entstand aus seinen Beobachtungen von schizophrenen Patienten in 1902 seine Dissertation Zur Psychologie und Pathologie sogenannter occulter Phänomene.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 49: Bei ihrer ersten Begegnung 1907 in Wien sprachen Freud und Jung dreizehn Stunden miteinander, wobei sowohl sehr ähnliche Interessen als auch bereits Differenzen sichtbar wurden: Freud habe Jung gebeten, «nie die Sexualtheorie aufzugeben». Ein früher Konfliktpunkt war ihre unterschiedliche Einstellung zu Religion und zum Irrationalen: Jung nahm sogenannte parapsychologische Phänomene ernst, während Freud diese «als Unsinn» ablehnte, selbst als sich nach Schilderung Jungs ein solches Phänomen (ein wiederholter Knall im Bücherschrank) am gemeinsamen Abend ereignet haben soll. Jung war enttäuscht über die Reaktion Freuds und schrieb sie dessen «materialistischem Vorurteil» zu. Freud schätzte es, dass Jung sich als «Christ und Pastorensohn» seiner Theorie anschloss. Erst Jungs «Auftreten [habe] die Psychoanalyse der Gefahr entzogen … eine jüdische nationale Angelegenheit zu werden», schrieb er in einem privaten Brief 1908. Freud sah in Jung den Stammhalter und Fortführer der Psychoanalyse und bezeichnete ihn als «Kronprinzen».
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 51: Doch allmählich traten die Differenzen zwischen beiden deutlicher hervor. Ende 1912 führte dies zum Bruch, nachdem Jung sein Buch Wandlungen und Symbole der Libido publiziert hatte. Er kritisierte darin Freuds Libidobegriff, «der von der vorrangigen Bedeutung des Geschlechtstriebes ausging, welche aus der Kindheit des jeweiligen Individuums herrühre», während er der Auffassung war, «dass die Definition erweitert werden, der Libidobegriff ausgedehnt werden müsse, sodass auch universelle Verhaltensmuster, die vielen unterschiedlichen Kulturen in unterschiedlichen geschichtlichen Perioden gemein waren, von ihm erfasst würden». Freud erklärte daraufhin, «dass er die Arbeiten und Ausführungen der Schweizer nicht als legitime Fortsetzung der Psychoanalyse ansehen könne».
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 53: Nach scharfen persönlichen Vorwürfen von Jung kündigte Freud ihm im Januar 1913 schriftlich die Freundschaft. Im Oktober desselben Jahres beendete Jung dann auch die fachliche Zusammenarbeit und legte im April 1914 den Vorsitz der Internationalen Psychoanalytischen Vereinigung nieder.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 68: Als extravertiert bezeichnete Jung einen Menschen, dessen Verhalten auf die äussere, objektive Welt ausgerichtet und von ihr geleitet wird. Introvertierte Menschen sind dagegen auf ihre innere, subjektive Welt ausgerichtet und verhalten sich deren Anforderungen entsprechend. Da diese Differenzierung nicht ausreichte, entwickelte er ein Modell, bestehend aus vier Funktionen – Denken, Fühlen, Intuition und Empfinden – das, kombiniert mit dem Attribut introvertiert oder extravertiert, acht Möglichkeiten ergibt, aus denen sich je nach Paarung acht Typen zusammensetzen lassen. In seinem Werk Psychologische Typen von 1921 schrieb er darüber.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 70: extravertiertes Denken orientiert sich stark an objektiven und äusseren Gegebenheiten und ist oft, aber nicht immer an konkrete und reale Tatsachen gebunden. Personen mit diesem Typus haben ein hohes Rechtsbewusstsein und fordern gleiches von anderen. Dabei gehen sie teilweise kompromisslos vor, nach dem Motto «Der Zweck heiligt die Mittel»; eine konservative Neigung ist gegeben. Aufgrund der untergeordneten Gefühlsfunktion wirken sie oftmals gefühlsarm und unpersönlich.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 74: extravertiertes Empfinden ist eine vitale Funktion mit dem stärksten Lebenstrieb. Ein solcher Mensch ist realistisch und oft auch genussorientiert. Bei zu starkem Objekteinfluss kommt seine skrupellose und teilweise naiv-lächerliche Moral zum Vorschein. In Neurosen entwickelt er Phobien aller Art mit Zwangssymptomen und ist nicht fähig, die Seele des Objektes zu erkennen.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 279: Lari näki sen taas. Naapurin nurmikon poikki kulki punainen kovakuoriaismainen esine ja katosi aidan taa. Mikä se oli? Hän tuijotti nurmikolle, vaikkei olisi halunnut. Mitä väliä sillä oli? Mutta jos väliä ei ollut, miksi todistella, ettei väliä ollut? Hän tunsi asian monimutkaistuvan ja yhdisti nopeasti kolme punaista: punainen esine – punainen mönkijä – punainen muoviämpäri, jolla Vilja oli istunut. Kun esine tuli taas esiin, hän ymmärsi sen olevan robottiruohonleikkuri.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 316: Tapio Korhonen (s. 1944) on avaruusoptiikkaan erikoistunut tutkija, joka työskentelee optiikan alalla Turun yliopiston Tuorlan observatoriossa ja johtamassaan Opteon-yrityksessä Piikkiössä. Koulutukseltaan hän on filosofian lisensiaatti.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 318: Korhonen nousi julkisuuteen toukokuussa 2009, jolloin hänen tähän asti vaativin työkohteensa nousi kiertoradalle Ariane 5 -kantoraketilla. Hänen kahdeksassa kuukaudessa vuonna 2005 valmistamansa avaruuspeili toimi kiertoradalla Euroopan avaruusjärjestön (ESA) Herschel-avaruusobservatiossa, jonka toiminta-aika oli lähes 4 vuotta. 2018 laukaistiin ESAn ADM-Aeolus-kaukokartoitussatelliitti, jonka peilit on hiottu Opteonilla.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 320: Korhonen rakensi ensimmäiset kaukoputkensa lapsena 1950-luvulla, jolloin avaruuden tutkimus eli alkuaikaansa, babylonialaisten tihrustellessa taivaalle ilman silmälaseja. Pian hän oli jo hionut valmiiksi ensimmäisen oman peilikaukoputkensa. Hän aloitti avaruusalan opinnot ja meni myöhemmin tähtitieteilijäksi Tuorlan observatorioon, jossa hän keskittyi avaruusoptiikan tutkimusalaan. Korhosen ensimmäinen suuri toimeksianto oli 2,5-metrisen peilin valmistus yhteispohjoismaiseen NOT (Nordic Optical Telescope) -observatorioon, joka sijaitsee La Palmalla Kanariansaarilla. La Palmalla on lisäksi kaksi muuta hänen tekemäänsä peiliä ja maailman suurimmalla linssiobjektiivilla varustettu aurinkoteleskooppi. Yksi peili on myös Etelä-Amerikan Chilessä, ja myös kiertoradalla on yksi jo ennen Herschelin sinne saapumista
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 326: PETRI VÄISÄNEN on 53-vuotias tähtitieteilijä ja filosofian professori Etelä-Afrikan tähtitieteellisestä observatoriosta ja Kapkaupungin yliopistosta. Hän asuu Kapkaupungissa vaimonsa kanssa. Neljä aikuista lasta muuttivat pois kotoa niin pian kuin pääsivät. Harrastaa juoksua, apologiakirjallisuuden (mm. C.S. Lewis) lukemista ja kuuntelee vaimon kasarimusiikkia keittiöstä.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 346: Suomalaiset ovat puineet aivan liikaa 60- ja 70-lukujen poliittisia pikaromansseja työväestön kanssa. (Que hermosas son las obreras, bailemos con ellas.) Markkina-arvon ja maksutaseen aika on synnyttänyt tylsän tunnustuksellisen lajityypin: katuva taistolainen tv-studiossa klo 21.10. Heidän kostuneet silmänsä kavaltavat heidät – hauskaa on ollut. Jokaiselle suodaan yksi ihana nuoruus, jonka ylle kohoaa huojuva näyttelypaviljonki nimeltä ihmiselämä. Joillakin se nuoruus näyttää jatkuvan kuin persjalkaisen balttinaisen reisi suoraan kenkään.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 372: Korhonen on kauan tuntenut viehtymystä kioskikirjoihin. ”En tiedä mistä se johtuu. Ne vain tuottavat mulle äärimmäistä, suurta huvitusta ja jopa sexuaalista mielihyvää. Näiden kirjojen, aidon roskan äärellä tunnen olevani tekemisissä rehellisemmän asian kanssa kuin jos teen kaunokirjallisuutta, joka esiintyy syvämietteisenä mutta on todellisuudessa tylsää ja vajavaista. Pidän viran puolesta tietysti Robert Musilin pitkistä ajatuksenjuoksutuksista, joissa analysoidaan syvällisesti joitain eurooppalaisen kulttuurin yksittäisiä kysymyksiä, mutta selkeästi enemmän siitä, kun Anna-Leena ja Riku syttyvät toisiinsa”, Korhonen sanoi.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 493: Naisten arvoitus on niiden tunne-elämän hämäryys, Äkkiä nyt housut pois! Jakob Bosshart M FUCK!
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 494: Miesäly on maailman herra yliherra. Naiskysymys on tasapainon palautus tyhmempien naisten toimesta. Jakob Bosshart M FUCK!
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 619: Son ami le journaliste Maurice de Waleffe (1874-1946) témoigne que, dès son arrivée à Paris, en 1897, il projetait, pour mieux s'intégrer à la société parisienne, de demander sa naturalisation, de changer de nom et de se faire baptiser et que le nom de Croisset était pour lui « le nom du village d'où Gustave Flaubert datait les volumes de sa correspondance1 ». En 1911, il obtint du Conseil d'État le changement de son nom pour celui de Wiener de Croisset. Francis de Croisset recherche le scandale avec des comédies d’une audace calculée, et devient, par son œuvre mais aussi par sa vie privée, omniprésent dans la presse du temps.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 621: Après avoir été fiancé avec Mlle Dietz-Monnin, petite-fille du sénateur Charles Dietz-Monnin, il rompt ses fiançailles et épouse, en 1910, Marie-Thérèse de Chevigné, veuve de Maurice Bischoffsheim (1875-1904), arrière-petite-fille par sa mère du marquis de Sade et mère de Marie-Laure de Noailles. Ils font aménager à partir de 1912 la villa Croisset à Grasse. À partir de 1934 et jusqu'à sa mort le 8 novembre 1937, il vécut avenue Gabriel à Paris. Élégant, brillant et mondain, il inspire à Marcel Proust la métamorphose de Bloch en Jacques du Rozier dans À la recherche du temps perdu. Tosi kova streeberi, joka antoi Marcelille kimmokkeen ruveta snobixi izekin.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 650: When Illinois opened its first hospital for the mentally ill in 1851, the state legislature passed a law that within two years of its passage was amended to require a public hearing before a person could be committed against his or her will. There was one exception, however: a husband could have his wife committed without either a public hearing or her consent. In 1860, Theophilus Packard judged that his wife was "slightly insane", a condition he attributed to "excessive application of body and mind". He arranged for a doctor, J.W. Brown, to speak with her. The doctor pretended to be a sewing machine salesman. During their conversation, Elizabeth complained of her husband's domination and his accusations to others that she was insane. Dr. Brown reported this conversation to Theophilus (along with the observation that Mrs. Packard "exhibited a great dislike to me"). Theophilus decided to have Elizabeth committed. She learned of this decision on June 18, 1860, when the county sheriff arrived at the Packard home to take her into custody.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 660: When Elizabeth Packard returned to the home she shared with her husband in Manteno, Illinois, she found that the night before her release, her husband had rented their home to another family, sold her furniture, had taken her money, notes, wardrobe and children, and had left the state. She appealed to the Supreme Courts of both Illinois and Massachusetts, to where her husband had taken her children, but had no legal recourse, as married women in these states at the time had no legal rights to their property or children (see Coverture). As such, the Anti-Insane Asylum Society was formed.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 662: With that, she did not go back to her former life, but became a national celebrity of sorts, publishing "an armload of books and criss-crossing the United States on a decades-long reform campaign", not only fighting for married women's rights and freedom of speech, but calling out against "the power of insane asylums". She became what some scholars call "a publicist and lobbyist for better insanity laws". As scholar Kathryn Burns-Howard has argued, Packard reinvented herself in this rôle, earning enough to support her children and even her estranged husband, from whom she remained separated for the rest of her life. Ultimately, moderate supporters of women's rights in the northern U.S. embraced her, weaving her story into arguments about slavery, framing her experience as a type of enslavement and even arguing in the midst of the Civil War that a county in the midst of freeing African-American slaves should do the same for others who suffered from abusive husbands. Some argue that she seemed oblivious to her racial prejudice in arguing that white women had a "moral and spiritual nature" and suffered more "spiritual agony" than formerly enslaved African-Americans. Even so, others say that her story provided "a stirring example of oppressed womanhood" that others did not.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 668: She died on July 25, 1897. In her obituary, The Inter Ocean, a Chicago newspaper, described her as "the reformer of insane asylum methods".
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 681: Alexandre Mercereau (né le 22 octobre 1884 à Paris et mort en 1945 à Gandelu) est un homme de lettres, poète, critique d´art, philosophe et journaliste français. Il fut étroitement lié au développement de l´art moderne, comme cubisme.
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 736: Peter Nygårds vänner tex Aira Samulin känner sig lite obekväma om Peters svarta sida. Peter Nygårds aptit på unga kvinnor var bottenlös. Peter Nygård var en skitstövel, säger en ex-anställd. Men nu avslöjer HBL Peters gula sida! Peter Nygård ser ut som en av de kinesiska hjältarna i Marvels nya film. Peter Nygård i sina jetset-millionär-modekungadagar såg ut precis som Ronny Chieng med Akwafina, spelandes Jon-Jon i Marvel´s fantasifilm Tio ringar. Peter sku säkert ha betalt Awkwafinas tandläkarräkningar. Jag med! After Hours, Awkwafina Gets Naked And Watches ASMR Videos. But she has not leaked them as yet, aw shucks. (Autonomous Sensory Meridian Response (ASMR) is a pleasurable, tingling sensation usually felt in the brain, but can spread to the rest of the body. It frequently occurs when watching things such as demonstrations, foreign accents, explanations, naked Asian ladies, etc., and it´s a generally wonderful feeling. I´ve experienced ASMR all my life, but never knew it had a name until now, so hooray I guess!)
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 770: - obert_Browning" title="Robert Browning">Robert Browning
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 774: - obert_Burns" title="Robert Burns">Robert Burns
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 789: - obert_Darwin" class="mw-redirect" title="Charles Robert Darwin">Charles Robert Darwin
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 815: - obert_Herrick" title="Robert Herrick">Robert Herrick
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 876: - obias_Smollett" title="Tobias Smollett">Tobias Smollet
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 877: - obert_Southey" title="Robert Southey">Robert Southey
xxx/ellauri129.html on line 883: - obert_Louis_Stevenson" title="Robert Louis Stevenson">Robert Louis Stevenson
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 188: Uskonnon tulee tehdä iloisexi. Jakob Bosshart M KILL!
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 189: J:llä ei ole mitään tekemistä moraalin kanssa. Jakob Bosshart M KILL!
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 190: Vain usko mahdottomaan on uskontoa. Jakob Bosshart M KILL!
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 193: J:n temppelin takana on pirun kappeli. Robert Burton M KILL!
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 264: Vaakun kokoelmassa on selkeästi kristinuskobiasta. Ei tosiaankaan yhtään kuulu naisen ääntä seurakunnasta. Äijäkööri näyttää pääasiassa pohtivan, pitäiskö koko kristinmytologiaan uskoa vaiko eikö; enemmistö näyttää Jehovan porukoille peukkua, mutta joukossa on joitain tunnettujakin soraääniä. Kuten aina taantumuxen vanhat hopeaselät kasan päällä on entisellä kannalla, nuoremmat kulttuuripellet pyrkii niiden paikalle vastustamalla status quota. Erittäinkin monet tähdentää ettei koko uskonnossa tietystikään ole päätä eikä häntää, mutta niin intuitiivisesti pitää ollakin, eihän muuten mitään uskomista tarvittaskaan. Pyramidihuijaustahan tää on kaikki, opioideja tässä myyvään laahuxelle. Sää uskot vaikka mahDOTtomaan, seuraa sydäntäs vaan!
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 359: Jos aina pohtii elämää ei ehdi elää. Jakob Bosshart M KILL!
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 360: Apinoita syntyy ja kuolee lakkaamatta. Jakob Bosshart M KILL!
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 361: Elämä on helpompi kestää välitilana. Jakob Bosshart M KILL!
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 480: Kuolema on kuolemattomuuden alku. Max Robespierre M KILL!
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 555: But tender maidens, robed in white, Vaan valkomekkoisia lolitoja
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 579: Myös Vilpittömän Nahkurin Runous-nettiradion kuudes sarja on juuri alkanut, ja tämän päivän jaksossa entinen runoilijapalkinnon saaja Carola Anna Tussua pohtii lähetysennusteen rukousmaista laatua: ‘There’s never been a time when you could just say anything’: Frank Skinner on free speech, his bullying shame – and knob [kyrvännuppi] jokes. This poetry-loving, religious knob has deep regrets about some of his comedy: either the standup comic has grown up, or he was never as laddish as his image suggested. Nearing death and last judgment, he is hoping to perform a “cleaner, cleverer” kind of act, one that would let him look straight at the crowd and – perhaps for the first time in his life – not see anybody squirming in their seat in discomfort. “It was a struggle,” the 65-year-old says with a grin, “because I realised that I seem to think in knob jokes. And I have done since I was about 13. In the West Midlands, that was how people communicated!”
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 583: “I don’t think there’s ever been a time when you could just say anything.” He recalls an early comedy show – this must have been in the late 80s – where the host apologised to the crowd after Skinner had performed some risque sexual material. “He said I’d never play at the venue again – and then he launched into a load of racist material and brought the house down. Everyone’s got their own standards and restraints. But I think it’s been good for me to keep questioning what I say. It’s made me think more positively about racist jokes and not so much about penises. My knob is not working anymore BTW, I'm 65. We’re both deeply ashamed. Can't lift our eye to the public.”
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 585: So the other day, he blacked up as [black footballer] Lee for a sketch, complete with a pineapple to represent his hair. Boy that went down in the colored audience! Skinner has been that funny for as long as he can remember as far as he can remember. He has a masters in English literature; he is a practising Roman catholic. What a laugh. Skinner once had a chat with Eddie Izzard about what they could share about their lives on stage. It was fine for Izzard to discuss wearing women’s clothes, but as for Skinner’s own religious beliefs about God's knob? God, no. Too shameful.
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 587: But recently that position has shifted a little. Last year he published A Comedian’s Prayer Book, which features him talking to the supreme being in his typically down-to-earth way (“I always liked thinking Jesus' knob hung out from women's clothes with sinners. It made me feel potentially understood”). “One of the things religion has suffered from is being spoken of in grave terms constantly. I seriously think it is a joke." Another boring thing about Skinner: he’s been a teetotaller since he reached his 60s. He got a kid at 55, who must now be, wait, 35? No, Buzz is just 10. I have only recently realized I'm not the main character here, but just an extra in a bigger scene. “Hitting kids … that’s another of those things that have stopped,” Evolution is what Skinner is all about – animals can change and they can grow, it just takes millions of years. When he made his jokes about racism and homophobia, he says, there was a slight backlash from the left. They hadn't stopped hitting lads, the sods. Frank Skinner’s 30 Years of Dirt is at the Assembly Roxy, Edinburgh, from 4 to 28 August. For more information and tickets go to frankskinnerlive.com.
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 626: In Neuwieder Stadtteil Niederbieber ist eine Realschule nach ihr benannt, ebenso ein kleiner Park im Zentrum der Stadt. Außerdem gibt es ihr zu Ehren einen Waldweg oberhalb von Opatija in Kroatien.
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 710: Tulla ja väistyä, elää ja kuolla? Mixi niin? Mikä oli sen tarkoitus? Vilhelm Moberg F KILL!
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 776: Pendant la guerre d’Espagne, Claudel apporta son soutien aux franquistes. Devant la Seconde Guerre mondiale, Claudel est initialement peu convaincu par le danger que représente l'Allemagne nazie. Il s'inquiète davantage de la puissante Russie, qui représente selon lui une « infâme canaille communiste ». Claudel expliqua ses flatteries à Pétain par l'approbation d'une partie de sa politique (lutte contre l'alcoolisme, appui aux écoles libres). Il est meilleures amis avec Francois Mauriac.
xxx/ellauri130.html on line 780: Claudel was nominated for the Nobel Prize in Literature in six different years. Another hopeless Nobel wannabe, politically too suspect.
xxx/ellauri134.html on line 86: Joo alkaahan tässä olla kuuma, muttei sitä niin huomaa kun istuu ize padassa. Ei pidä liezoa ilmastoahdistusta, sanoo Hoblan Torsten Hårfager, jota Pigita komppaa produssa. Varuixi ostin Arabian poistohyllystä 50 sentillä nuhjaantuneen Tiemestarin.
xxx/ellauri134.html on line 182: Libra Dates: September 23-October 22
xxx/ellauri134.html on line 184: Scorpio Dates: October 23-November 21
xxx/ellauri134.html on line 256: Kaxoset on mobiili ilmamerkki, nopeeälyinen ja sopeutuva. Sixi mitään ei pidä ottaa liian vakavasti. Se on Speden arkkityyppi, sosiaalinen, länkyttäjä, ja rakastaa kiintoisia apinoita ympärillä alvariinsa. Ne ovat korkeajännitteisiä helppoheikkejä.
xxx/ellauri134.html on line 508: A Halloween Tale, Wicked and Stunning: The Nightmare Before ChristmasOctober 30, 2020In "Entertainment"
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 60: Forbesin toimittaja Alex Konrad pohti rahoittajan Tiger Globalin motiiveja. Oliko sen hyvin pitkään tuottamattomassa investoinnissa altruistisia tarkoitusperiä, vai luottiko sijoitusyhtiö joskus kaukana tulevaisuudessa tuleviin voittoihin? Bodnickin mukaan Quora pyrki pääsemään rahastamaan palvelusta keskipitkällä aikavälillä, mutta ei ollut menemässä pörssiin useisiin vuosiin.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 76: Lolita by Vladimir Nabokov - probably due to my research interest in narratives. Nabokov is a master of narration. Manipulation of sympathy through the power and beauty of language at its best.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 80: Voilà my list of worthwhile reads. Initially, I thought about it as a list of books to read before you die, but it’s more like a list of books to read while you live. There’s lots of wisdom and useful knowledge in them. And obviously, there are plenty more which could (should) be added. Hope you enjoy them if you haven’t already :)
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 86: Jung war ein Bulle von einem Mann. 1,85 Meter hoch, mit grobgeschnittenen Zügen, nach einer etwas zweifelhaften Familienlegende Urenkel Johann Wolfgang von Goethes durch ein illegitimes Verhältnis, und von einem imponierenden Körperbau. Sein Humor war derb und grob, und geistreich zugleich. Er hatte einen wilden Temperamament und einen Hang zur Grobheit: einmal nannte er eine Patientin mit einer krankhaftern Angst vor Syphilis "eine dreckige Sauge". Seine Neigung zum Grandiosen war vielleicht der Grund für seine Bewunderung Hitlers und der Nazis. Die Juden seien paranoid. Nach dem Krieg hatte er bequemlicherweise seine Meinung geändert: Hitler sei "mehr als halb verrückt". Sein Sohn erzählt dass er mogelte beim Spiel und war ein schlechter Verlorer, wie Adolf Hitler auch. Er lief im Garten in zerlumpten Shorz, mit dem Pimmel heraushängend, aber war ein Feinschmeckerkoch. Er liebte Kriminalromane und Hunde. "Der Weise von Zürich" starb im Alter von 85 Jahren.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 103: Midnight at Chernobyl by Adam Higgenbotham—my most recent read was for research but turned out to be engagingly written, well-researched and thoroughly mesmerizing.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 119: The magical community is treated as “more special” than the “normal” community, which is treated with distrust and disdain. Although I love the Weasleys, it’s entirely possible that Mr. Weasley’s obsession with non-magical ephemera could be viewed as the anthropologist exploring a primitive culture. Mr. Weasley collects artifacts because he is fascinated with them, not because he wants to understand non-magical culture better. That should be totally off-putting to the liberal crowd, but they missed it. They are too busy justifying the racism and bigotry as the product of the “pure blood” families.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 125: There is bigotry and racism, and I do not for one second believe that JK Rowling thought hard enough about the issue to make it the product of the “pure blood” crowd. I believe that for her it was all about making Harry and his friends “special.” They had obstacles to overcome, like Hermione with her non-magical parents and the Weasleys, who were generally despised for being not very serious (literally the red-headed step children of the wizarding world.” There were “squibs.” Name-calling and bullying in this school are as common as in the “normal world,” only often the bullying comes much closer to insulting one’s parents than it does in the outside world.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 180: The idea of writing a book is so you can break all your rules, personal or not. The point of a writer is to write about characters you probably could never become or want to become. The best writers write outside of themselves. But with that written, not all writers write fiction. Some write memoirs or autobiographies. But maybe the personal rule they are breaking is publishing their personal life.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 196: Kun tytöillä on tietoa, he voivat luovuttaa oikeuksiaan. Pläänin spongebobina sinä edistät tyttöjen koulutusta ja lisäät luotettavaa tietoa oikeuksista tyttöihin. Tieto koskee lapsiavioliittoja, liian varhaisia raiskauksia ja tyttöjen herneenpalkojen silpomista mm. Suomessa, Etiopiassa, Ugandassa, Mosambikissa ja Laosissa.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 197: Spongebobina olet purkamassa haitallisia esteitä ja rakentamassa moniarvoista maailmaa, jossa tytöillä on mahdollisuus luopua itse elimestään sinun asettamillasi reunaehdoilla. Täytä lomake ja olet mukana arvonnassa, jossa pääpalkintona on mm. Suomen, Etiopian, Ugandan, Mosambikin ja Laosin matkoja. Lohdutuspalkintoina jaetaan Gilletten partateriä.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 473: obrazovanie/analiz-stihotvoreniya-pora-moj-drug-pora-as-pushkina_3.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 512: So where I start is with connection. Because, by the time you're a social worker for 10 years, what you realize is that connection is why we're here. It's what gives purpose and meaning to our lives. This is what it's all about. It doesn't matter whether you talk to people who work in social justice, mental health and abuse and neglect, what we know is that connection, the ability to feel connected, is -- neurobiologically that's how we're wired -- it's why we're here. Olemme ohjelmoituja kuulumaan joukkoon. Voi hemmetti.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 530: Well, I have a vulnerability issue. I'm not sufficiently vulnerable. And I know that vulnerability is the core of shame and fear and our struggle for worthiness, but it appears that it's also the birthplace of joy, of creativity, of belonging, of love. And I think I have a problem, and I need some help." And I said, "But here's the thing: no family stuff, no childhood shit, that's way too vulnerable."
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 534: Because -- We are the most in-debt ... obese ... addicted and medicated adult cohort in U.S. history. Goodbye vulnerability, farewell grief, byebye shame, so long fear, see ya later disappointment. I don't want to feel you up. I'm going to have a couple of beers and a banana nut muffin. Move fat from my cheek to my butt.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 536: And we perfect, most dangerously, our children. Those perfect little babies in our hand, we say, "Look at her, she's perfect. My job is just to keep her perfect -- make sure she makes the tennis team by fifth grade and Yale by seventh."
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 537: Now this fatass bitch really got some World I problems, she has.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 657: Licypriya Kangujam ( born 2 October 2011) is a child environmental activist from India. She is one of the youngest climate activists globally and has addressed world leaders at the United Nations Climate Change Conference 2019 (COP25) in Madrid, Spain asking them to take immediate climate action. Licypriya has been campaigning for climate action in India since 2018, to pass new laws to curb India's high pollution levels, and to make climate-change literacy mandatory in schools.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 661: In June 2021, Licypriya was in the news as a crowdfunding appeal on Ketto seeking one crore rupees to buy 100 oxygen concentrators came under scrutiny following the arrest of her father and legal guardian Kangujam Karnajit, on May 31st 2021. Her father, also known as KK Singh, was declared an absconder and had fled Manipur in 2016 after he was arrested and let out on interim bail following multiple charges. These charges were for duping several self-help groups, hotels and individuals of more than Rs 19 lakh for a Global Youth Meet that he had organised in Imphal in 2014. His latest arrest was for fresh charges relating to his chairmanship of the International Youth Committee, an organisation founded by him. Several national and international students have been deceived of money amounting to around Rs 3 crore on the pretext of fees for multiple international youth exchange programs, that were never organised.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 663: Relating to the crowdfunding appeal on Ketto, Laxmi K, who works on climate action and was aware of prior allegations related to her fathers activities, initiated contact with Ketto requesting due diligence. Further concerns around the Ketto crowd funding drive was flagged by political activist Angellica Aribam, a day after Paojel Chaoba of The Frontier Manipur broke a story on 19 May on how the Ketto donation drive by the child activist could be a possible scheme to defraud people by her father. In an email written to Varun Sheth of Ketto, Angellica asked whether the Noble Citizen Foundation, the agency that was being handed the money collected from the donation drive had any credibility and if Ketto was certain there were no connections with the child’s father. However, she never received any response.
xxx/ellauri136.html on line 695: Obladi oblada life goes on bra
La la how the life goes on.
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 55: Portin kirjoitti vuonna 2003, että jostakin syystä Tammisalo pitää edelleen Dawkinsin geenikäsitystä tieteen viimeisenä sanana, vaikka genetiikka on kehittynyt siitä paljon. Hän myös huomautti, että sosiobiologiassa ja ja evoluutiopsykologiassa on taipumus sivuuttaa ympäristön vaikutus yksilön kehitykseen ja rajuimmillaan vetää suora yhteys geenien ja vaikkapa köyhyyden välille. Rantala ja Tammisalo vastasivat hänelle:
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 94: Meni viikko, ja Souri huomasi muutoksen. Kuukaudessa hän oli kuin uusi ihminen, omasta mielestään liiankin vakaa taidetta tehdäkseen. Laiduntamisen hän on jättänyt sen vuoxi vähemmälle. Hän sanoo myös oppineensa tarkkailemaan aivokemioitaan ja löytämään ”evoluutiobiologisesti korkeamman tietoisuuden tason”. Souri on nykyään laitumella Sipoossa eikä voisi kuvitellakaan palaavansa enää kaupunkiin.
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 98: Keväällä 2019 Souri oli vihreiden eduskuntavaaliehdokkaana ja piti Youtubessa vaalikanavaa nimeltä Noitarovio. Yhtenä vieraana oli Rantala – hän puhui suoliston mikrobiomista. Toinen vieras oli lääkäri Antti Heikkilä, joka suhtautuu lääkkeisiin penseästi. Heikkilä tunnetaan myös vähähiilihydraattisen ruokavalion ja rasvankäytön puolestapuhujana. Rantala puolestaan sanoo rasvojen demonisoinnin olevan sokeriteollisuuden propagandaa. Sokerin demonisointi puolestaan on lehmäteollisuuden juonia. Videolla Heikkilä esitti omintakeisia näkemyksiään ja muun muassa väitti gluteenin aiheuttavan psykoosia. Sen on valmis uskomaan kuin kuuntelee Heikkilää. Souri näytti nielevän Heikkilän puheet pureximatta kuin hentosudenkorento jauhopukin toukan.
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 163: Hoblan lisälehtiä la 9.10.21
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 165: Juutalaisia kirjallisuusnobelisteja on yhtä monta kuin on kirjallisuusnobelistinaisia (16/117 eli runsas prosentti). Maailman väestöstä on enemmistö naisia. Juutalaista verta väestössä on 2 promillea. Sillä ei saisi enää ajaa autoa.
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 170: obaatti.jpg" width="50%" />
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 172: Torpedolik akrobat och Mumintrollet
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 180: Q: Vad är problemet med kommunismen?
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 182: A: Kommunism är slutstadiet i socialism. I kommunism finns ingen stat, ingen egendom, ingen valuta och inga gränser. Detta tillstånd har naturligtvis aldrig existerat. Problemet med kommunismen är att den också kräver en ny apa, som inte heller existerar. Lenin och senare Stalin, Mao och Pol Pot försökte lösa detta problem genom att utrota alla icke önskvärda apor i det socialistiska samhället; bönder, borgare, intellektuella, vetenskapsmän, homosexuella och gamla apor med glasögon bland annat.
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 196: At its presentation at the 1869 Salon, this enigmatic group portrait was overwhelmingly misunderstood despite the obvious reference to Majas at the Balcony of Francisco Goya. "Close the shutters!" was the sarcastic reaction of the caricaturist Cham while another critic attacked "this gross art" and Manet who "lowered himself to the point of being in competition with the painters of the building trade".
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 198: The hierarchy usually attached to human figures and objects has been disregarded: the flowers receiving more detail than some of the faces.
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 641: If you're buying this trash for a class then you're a sucker, turn back now! Hopefully Edward isn't still teaching his own tasteless fan fiction in a college setting. It's a misunderstood teenager's journey through satire complete with crude, unoriginal and stereotypical takes on characters from the lens of a self insert hero amounting to little more than finger pointing. You'll be offended, sure, but with little substance left to interpret besides the authors very obvious discomfort with himself and others unlike him. (Make some new friends, Edward.) Beyond being ridiculous as a required reading piece for a class, actually paying for this garbage is insulting, and of course it is an absolute drag to slog through. Nobody's going to publish this except on demand printing obviously and that's why you're buying it from Amazon!!!
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 682: - Carol is a self movitaed person. Always pleasant and very deciated to her job. Karen Malewicz
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 742: From 2003 to 2004, Harding competed as a professional boxer. Her life has been the subject of many books, films, documentaries, and academic studies. In 2014, two television documentaries were made about Harding´s life and skating career (Nancy & Tonya and The Price of Gold), inspiring Steven Rogers to write the film I, Tonya in 2017, in which Harding was portrayed by Australian actress Margot Robbie. In 2018, she was a contestant on season 26 of Dancing with the Stars, finishing in third place. In 2019, she won season 16 of Worst Cooks in America: Celebrity Edition.
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 757: Suzy I agree with you entirely about the romance/relationship angle in this (and all her) books. I find the descriptions of life in Japan & art history engrossing, but the shift in to her personal life is shallow and inexplicable. I frequently stare at those paragraphs wondering, what's Rei's problem, whats Massey's problem? Rei's choice of friends are also pretty bad.
xxx/ellauri137.html on line 779: Barry A. Hudson says: Good writing and a good introduction to Japanese culture. I note than some Japanese criticize her works, but my comment would be that Japanese culture never likes to air its dirty laundry. I find her cultural observations right on the mark. I actually think she has great love and admiration for Japan and its people, but she occasionally does not pull her punches.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 35: Kuten olen monesti jo paasannut, kiitollisuus on vituttava ilmiö. Sehän on IOU-lappujen keräämistä, velanottoa ja velanperintää. Hyvin amerikkalaista luottomeininkiä. In god we trust, all others pay cash. Obrigado. Much obliged. They owe me SOOOOOOO much, sanoi Jill kun Niklas oli pelastettu tolppa-apinan perheestä Bostoniin itäeurooppalaisine leukapartoineen. Se on vittua. Hyvä teko kiittää ize izeään, ei siihen pitäis vaatia mitään velkakirjoja.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 82: Rohn mentored Mark R. Hughes (the founder of Herbalife International) and life strategist Tony Robbins in the late 1970s. Others who credit Rohn for his influence on their careers include authors/lecturers Mark Victor Hansen and Jack Canafield (Chicken Soup book series), Everton Edwards (Hallmark Innovators Conglomerate), Brian Tracy, Todd Smith, and T. Harv Eker. Rohn also coauthored the novel Twelve Pillars with Chris Widener.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 97: Kuvottava virnuileva hölöttäjä, iänikuisen saman jenkkipaskan hokija. Suittu silverback lookalike. Et voi muuttaa ympäristöä, muuta siis vaan izeäsi niin että lisäät markkina-arvoasi. Aloita jo tänään. Saarnaaja jonka jumala on mammona. Kuvituxena setelitukkuja ihastuneina selailevia nuoria. Jim paneutui jobiin nuorena, se meni päin persettä, kunnes se lopulta oivalsi että izensä sukiminen paskanjauhanta ja tyhmempien höpläytys tuottaa paljon enemmän nopeammin ja vaivattomammin nappulaa. Ne jotka ei osaa opettaa. Ne jotka ei osaa sitäkään paasaa ja kynäilee viihdettä.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 111: In his book, Eker lists 17 ways in which the financial blueprints of the rich differ from those of the poor and the middle-class. One theme identified in this list is that the rich discard limiting beliefs while the unsuccessful succumb to them. Eker argues that: Rich people believe, "I create my life", while poor people believe, "Life happens to me"; rich people focus on opportunities while poor people focus on obstacles; and rich people admire other rich and successful people whereas poor people resent rich and successful people.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 115:
- Secrets of the Millionaire Mind". Retrieved 3 October 2012.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 116: - SunSentinel: To Be Wealthy, First Learn What Makes You Tick. Retrieved 8 October 2012.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 117: - Harv Eker – Maker of Millionaire Minds". Retrieved 3 October 2012.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 118: - Forbes: Regaining American Exceptionalism". Retrieved 6 October 2012.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 120: - WSJ: Tip for Authors In a Sales Bind: Get a 'Platform'. Retrieved 8 October 2012.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 204: Philip Gordon Wylie (May 12, 1902 – October 25, 1971) was an American author of works ranging from pulp science fiction, mysteries, social diatribes and satire to ecology and the threat of nuclear holocaust.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 211: An article Wylie wrote in 1951 in The Saturday Evening Post entitled "Anyone Can Raise Orchids" led to the popularization of this hobby—not just the rich, but gardeners of every economic level began experimenting with orchids.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 214: While on vacation, Wylie died from a heart attack on October 25, 1971, in Miami.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 271: "I am against the holocaust of anything," said Claire Bloom. Roth was invested serving much of his own paper trail, said Avishai. He started donated their papers to the Library of Congress in the 1970s, and the institution amassed some 25,000 articles from 1938 to 2001, including correspondence with Bloom, Updike, Saul Bellow and Cynthia Ozick. After Roth's death, the library acquired more material, including correspondence, drafts, research notes, autobiographical notes, and other personal effects. Vitun hamsteri.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 328: "He" on siis tässä tämä misogyynätty ranskalainen tipu Delfiini ja sen poikaystävä, nimetön isomuna aahrikkalainen neekeri, joka erehtyi Pariisissa tarjoamaan kanaa kaverillekin. Ei hiän sillä lailla olisi erehtynyt omanrotuisensa koiran suhteen. Vapaus koitti vasta kobran vanhan valkoisen professorin alla, joka antoi sexiä ja metafysiikkaa kunderamaisen jyhkeyden muodossa. Vain valkoiset vaivautukohot. Kanat kohottukohot.
xxx/ellauri138.html on line 337: Pepun kirjassa kuuluisilla kuusikymppisillä keskivartalolihavilla konservatiivisillä jutkumiehillä on aivan uskomaton viuhka, nubiilit naiset pörräävät niiden ympärillä kuin kärpäset. Arthur Sussman on hillottava oikeistopaskiainen esimerkixi, ja pomminvarmasti myös jutku. Bob Reich ja Bob Rubin on nekin todnäk jutkuja, jotka riitelevät USA:n talousylijäämästä, kenen taskuun olis setelitukot työnnettävä. Todnäk jutkujen.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 482: Brushing the cobwebs with his lofty plume; Hämähäkit huiski tukkaan paneelista,
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 569: So saying, she hobbled off with busy fear. Tän sanottuaan mummo hoippu tiehensä,
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 735: Ethereal, flush’d, and like a throbbing star Syleillä Voluptasta oli sillä kalu kova,
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 761: “Though I have found, I will not rob thy nest Ei tää ihan pikku homma ole kyllä,
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 856: Cet article ou cette section provient essentiellement de Pierre Larousse, Grand Dictionnaire universel du XIXe siècle, ou de la recopie de cette source, en partie ou en totalité. Cette source est dans le domaine public, mais elle peut être trop ancienne ou peu objective.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1002: L’innocence et son noble orgueil, Palauttaa viattomuuden ja jalon korskuuden,
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1031: En 1775 paraît sa première pièce majeure Le Dix-huitième siècle. C’est une satire en vers qui donne la caricature de son temps ; la philosophie y est le principe de la « chute des arts », de la « perte des mœurs ». Tout y est matière à charge : la bourgeoisie, la noblesse, le clergé libertin ; la littérature du moment y est passée au peigne fin. Des généralités sociales, on passe bientôt aux attaques ad hominem ; à la fin de la satire, du reste, le nom honni paraît enfin : Voltaire. Le Dix-huitième siècle est véritablement à sa parution, et pour reprendre le mot de Huysmans, « un météore dans le champ littéraire » de l’époque. Il n'est pas de bon ton, La critique se dechaine.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1046: Kun hän lähti Avonista vuonna 1828 (esipuheessaan Hégésippen kerätyille teoksille, Sainte-Beuve ilmoittaa meille, että Hégésippe oli erinomainen klassisen kirjallisuuden opiskelija ja että hänellä oli lahjakkuus latinalaiseen tulkintaan), hän aloitti oppisopimuskoulutuksen oikolukijana Provinsin kustantaja, monsieur Lebeau - Hégésippe viittaa teoksissaan M. Lebeaun tyttäreen "sisarekseen" ja hän omisti lyhyet proosakertomuksensa hänelle. Kun Kaarle X kulki Provinsin läpi vuonna 1828, Sainte-Beuve ilmoittaa meille, Moreau kirjoitti isänmaallisen runonsa Vive le roi! . Hégésippe Moreau meni Pariisiin ennen vuotta 1830. M.Lebrunin neuvosta hän lähetti kopion kirjeestään painamisesta M. Firmin Didotille, ja hänet palkattiin Didot -kustantamolla, joka sijaitsi rue Jacobilla, mutta lähti tämä työnantaja pian sen jälkeen. Hän osallistui heinäkuun vallankumoukseen 1830, työskenteli lyhyesti opettajana ( maître d'étude ) ja alkoi johtaa Böömin elämää.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1113: L'immobilité convulsive, Liikkumaton kouristus
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1132: Sa forme a pour l'observateur Se näyttää havainnoizijasta.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1223: Köyhää väkeä vie Pietarin slummeihin, syrjäytettyjen loukkoihin, jossa kohtaamme Makar Devuškinin, hupsun vanhemman kirjurin, ja Varvara Dobroselovan, kovaonnisen nuoren neidon, ompelijattaren. Tunteet läikkyvät ilmassa. Tapahtumat etenevät läpi Pietarin kesän, kostean, kuuman ja pölyisen vuodenajan, jota Dostojevski inhosi. Sekä Devuškin että Dobroselova yrittävät korvata kalsean todellisuuden kuvitelmilla, mutta onnistuvatko he? (Juonipaljastus: eivät.)
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1225: Dobroselovasta piirtyy kuva järkevänä ja sivistyneenä neitona. Hän ennakoi Dostojevskin traagisia naistyyppejä, kuten Rikoksen ja rangaistuksen (1866) häväistyä Sonjaa, mutta on myöhempiin sisariinsa verrattuna arkinen. Kirjeissään Dobroselova on yhtäältä torjuva ja kiusaantuu, toisaalta kantaa huolta Devuškinin terveydestä ja pyytää miestä käymään useammin. Dobroselova kertoo myös nuoruudestaan, menetyksistään ja rakkaudestaan ylioppilas Pokrovskiin.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1226: Devuškin päinvastoin kitkuttaa eteenpäin. Loppua kohden hän lähes piehtaroi nöyryydessään; neuroottisen masokisti ei mitenkään voi uhrautua tarpeeksi Dobroselovan eteen.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1230: Enemmän kuin katujen kieli romaanissa kaikuu viihderomaanien klangi. Hempeilevien ja korrektien ilmausten takaa kuultaa taloudellinen ja psyykkinen hätä, joka dostojevskilaisesti kiihtyy usein suggestiiviseksi, paljastavaksi ryöpyksi tajunnan peräkammarista, jossa haisee kiihko, kaikuu kärsimys ja jonka ovenkarmeissa riippuu tarkoituksettomuus. Devuškin joutuu nöyryytetyksi työpaikallaan, koska hänen vaatteensa ovat kehnot. Devuškin ja Dobroselova kärsivät, mutta tuska on Köyhässä väessä maallista, olosuhteista johtuvaa, eikä ylly Dostojevskin myöhemmän tuotannon metafyysiseen riutumukseen.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1232: Juuri kun Devuškinilla alkaa mennä paremmin, saapuu romahdus Bykovin, Dostojevskin niljakkaiden tilanomistajien prototyypin hahmossa; Bykov on selvästi sukua Rikoksen ja rangaistuksen Svidrigailoville. Bykov kosii Dobroselovaa, eikä sairaana riutuva nainen kauaa epäröi. Nuori Dostojevski on tässä ironisimmillaan: naisena Dobroselovaja valitsee miehen eli Bykovin (suom. ”härkänen”) eikä piipunrassia eli Devuškinia (suom. neitonen) – niin banaalia kuin se tavallaan onkin.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1234: Romaanin loppu on psykologisesti mielenkiintoinen. Dobroselova juoksuttaa Devuškinia kapioiden ostossa ja kerjää loppuun asti myötäkuntoa. Perinteisessä tulkinnassa Dobroselovan toiminta on nähty dostojevskilaisen motiivin kautta: hyvän maksaminen pahalla, kun hän ei ole voinut vastata Devuškinin tunteisiin, on se aiheuttanut syyllisyyttä, jonka hän nyt maksaa takaisin nöyryyttämällä miestä.
xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1236: Toisaalta Devuškin on liioitellut vanhuuttaan ja surkeuttaan ja ripustautunut Dobroselovaan. Devuškin ei ole mikään uhri, vaan hänen avunantonsa takana on ollut himo ja omistushalu, joista Dobroselovan on riuhtaistava itsensä irti. Ja mikä tepsisi rakkauteen lamauttavammin kuin julmuus? Sen me naiset tiedämme. Sori, olen Ville Ropponen.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 49: November 21, 2021 is the 49th annual World Hooray Day. Anyone can participate in World Hooray Day simply by starving ten countries and threatening them with dire consequences if they don't behave (= humor us). This demonstrates the importance of military communications for securing peas. World Hooray Day was a response to the successful conflict between Egypt and Israel in the Fall of 1973. Since then, World Hooray Day has been observed by Sionistic people in 180 countries.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 58: As a global event World Hooray Day joins local participation in a global extortion of peas. The World Hooray Day web site address is http://www.worldhelloday.org. The 70M winners of the 1939-45 shared Nobel Rest in Peace Prize are among the people who have realized World Hooray Day's value as an instrument for purloining peas and as an occasion that makes it possible for anyone in the world to contribute to the process of splitting third party peas and join the bunch of happy sinners who were the luckiest 6M winners of the prize. Join now, you may already have won!
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 60: Brian McCormack, a Ph.D. graduate of Arizona State University, and Michael McCormack, a graduate of Harvard University, work together to promote this annual global event. Brian's career has since had a rocket start, Michael's is a steady falling trend.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 75: Pro-Israeli people in 179 countries have celebrated the holiday, and McCormack has received written support from almost 100 authors, entertainers, Nobel Prize winners and world leaders. But it is proved hard to find people who are authors, entertaineers, Nobel Prize winners and world leaders all at once. So far, only Ronald Reagan and Donald Trump have qualified. 98 to go, says Michael optimistically.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 93: McCormack says that although he has probably led a less conventional life than many of his fellow graduates, he has no regrets.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 116: The Yom Kippur War, also known as the Ramadan War, the October Revolution, the 1973 Arab–Israeli War or the Fourth Arab–Israeli War, was an armed conflict fought from 6 to 25 October 1973 between Israel and a coalition of Arab states led by Egypt and Syria. The majority of combat between the two sides took place in the Sinai Peninsula and the Golan Heights — both of which were illegally occupied by Israel in 1967, and still are — with some fighting in African Egypt and northern Israel. Egypt's initial objective in the war was to seize a foothold on the eastern bank of the Suez Canal and subsequently leverage these gains to negotiate the return of the rest of the Israeli-occupied Sinai Peninsula.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 124: Yom Kippur was actually a bad choice of day by Sadat, for Arabs were still weak after Ramadan, while Israeli women were staying home and men were in synagogues, so the roads were free and reserves were quickly rounded up from the yeshivas. Prior to the war, Kissinger and Nixon consistently warned Meir that she must not be responsible for initiating a Middle East war. On October 6, 1973, the war opening date, Kissinger told Israel not to go for a preemptive strike, and Meir grumblingly confirmed to him that Israel would not.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 128: The Soviets started an airlift of arms to Syria and Egypt. The American global interest was to prove that Soviet arms could not dictate the outcome of the fighting, by supplying Israel. Kenneth Pollack is a Jew so I would not trust his accounts of the war events. Saad el Shazly was on the other side, so hardly more trustworthy as a witness. Pientä epäselvyyttä oliko Egyptin 3. armeijakunta oikeasti aivan motissa, vai oliko mukana ehkä Kissingerin juonittelua, eze saisi kunnian Israelin pysäytyxestä ja tällä lailla Egyptin lipsumaan jenkkipuolelle. Mikä sitten ajan kanssa onnistuikin.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 163: King Messiah will arise in the future and will restore the kingship of David to its ancient condition, to its rule as it was at first. And he will rebuild the Temple and gather the exiled of Israel. And in his days all the laws will return as they were in the past. They will offer up sacrifices, and will observe the Sabbatical years and the jubilee years with regard to all the commandments stated in the Torah. And he who does not believe in him, or he who does not await his coming, denies not only the [other] prophets, but also the Torah and Moses our Master. For, behold, the Torah testifies about him [the Messiah], as it is written,
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 169: I see him but not now ((Num. 24:17), this refers to David; I behold him but not nigh (ibid.) this refers to King Messiah; A star shall step forth out of Jacob (ibid.) this refers to King David; A star shall step forth out of Jacob (ibid.), this refers to David; and a scepter shall rise out of Israel (ibid.) this refers to King Messiah…
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 173: And if there should arise from the House of David a king, who studies the Torah and occupies himself with the commandments as his father David had, according to the written and oral Torah; and if he forces all Israel to follow the Torah and observe its rules; and if he fights the wars of the Lord—then he must be presumed be the Messiah. And if he succeeds in his acts, and rebuilds the Temple in its place, and gathers the exiled of Israel—then he certainly is the Messiah. And he will repair the whole world to serve the Lord together, as it is written, For then will I turn to the peoples a pure language that they may call upon the name of the Lord to serve Him with one consent (Zeph. 3:9)
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 175: It should not come to one’s mind that in the days of the Messiah anything in the customary order of the world will be annulled, or that there will be something new in the order of Creation. For the world will continue in its path. And that which Isaiah said, the wolf shall dwell with the lamb, and the leopard shall lie down with the kid (Isa. 11:6), is but an allegory and a riddle. The true meaning of it is that Israel will dwell in safety with the wicked of the idolaters who are likened to a wolf and a leopard….And all of them will return to faith of truth, and they will neither rob nor despoil, but will eat the things which are permitted, in pleasure, together with Israel, as it is written, The lion shall eat straw like the ox (Isa. 11:7). And likewise, all the similar things said about the Messiah are but allegories. And in the days of the Messiah it will become known to everybody what thing the allegory signified and to what thing it alluded.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 181: The sages and the prophets yearned for the days of the Messiah not in order they should rule over the whole world, and not in order they should lord it over the idolaters, not in order that the nations should elevate them, and not in order that they should eat and drink and rejoice; but in order they should devote themselves to the Torah and its wisdom, and that there be nobody to oppress them and to negate, so they should merit life in the World to Come…
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 190: Maimonides does a great job in condensing Jewish belief and expectation in the Messiah. The Jewish beliefs and expectations of the Messiah is wide and varied. Through the Talmud, and other writing we see the expectation of two Messiahs. One called Messiah Son of David, and the other Messiah Son of Joseph actually precedes the Messiah son of David and is killed in the battle of Gog and Magog. Messiah Son of David then asks the Lord to resurrect the slain Messiah Son of Joseph. The Babylonian Talmud refers to the relationship between these two Messiah’s.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 222: Today, the Jews every year commemorate the wait for Elijah at the Passover Seder meal; he is welcomed in every Jewish home with a large goblet of wine placed in the middle of the festive table for him. If he doesn't come, the guests present gobble the wine. According to some traditions there is a 45 day period following the death of Messiah Ben Joseph, before and the appearance of Messiah Ben David, its during this period, Elijah the forerunner of the Messiah makes his appearance.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 274: 2 Now it shall come to pass in the latter days That the foreskin mountain of the Lord´s house Shall be established on the top of the mountains, And shall be exalted above the hills; And all nations shall flow to it. 3 Many people shall come and say, "Come, and let us go up to the mountain of the Lord, To the house of the God of Jacob; He will teach us His ways, And we shall walk in His paths." For out of Zion shall go forth the law, And the word of the Lord from Jerusalem. Isaiah 2:2-3
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 399: 5 October World Teachers', Gurus', Motivational Speakers' and Personal Trainers' Day
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 400: 11 October International Day of the Girl Child
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 401: 13 October International Day for Disasters
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 402: 17 October International Day for Poverty
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 403: 24 October United Nations Day
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 404: 27 October World Day for Audiovisual Entertainment
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 454: El Heraldo Chihuahua (Mexico) contributed this: “Every third Thursday of November, World Philosophy Day is celebrated, with the main purpose of revaluing the role of philosophical reflection in all aspects of our lives, in a world that seems to need more and more of this intellectual resource. The need to understand is imperative. The concern for thought, and especially for philosophical thought, appears worldwide when we face a global wave of irrational attitudes and resources that complicate our usual coexistence, generating problems of various kinds. But it is a concern that indicates that we still have conscience."
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 466: Mannheim, Germany. World Day of Philosophy 2021: Public lecture "Responsibility for the Future and Climate Ethics". Public lecture with reception on the World Day of Philosophy with a greeting by Rector Prof. Dr. Thomas Puhl by Mannheim University. The lecture will focus on the question of how far individuals must or should feel obliged to contribute to climate protection. Hold on to your pants!
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 470: According to the Quebecois, "PHYLOTHERAPY", the term is no longer appropriate today because of the definition of the word "therapy" itself. The latter implies means "to cure or relieve illnesses". However, philosophical consultation does not aim at such an such an objective. Moreover, in some countries, the use of the term "THERAPY" is regulated and often reserved for the medical field. Finally, the term "PHILOTHERAPY" was initially used to draw attention to the fact that attention to the fact that philosophers were now offering consultations and opening specialized practices for this purpose specialized practices open to all. It was a good marketing move since the term has the attention of the media and the public. Today, the term "PHILOTHERAPY"has been abandoned in favor of "PHILOSOPHY CONSULTATION" offered by "PHILOSOPHES CONULTANTS". "CONULTANT" has even more traction now.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 474: Rome, Italy. ‘World Philosophy Day –Philosophy for the Futures’ bythe Italian Ministry of Education, TheDirectorate General for School Regulations, Evaluation andthe internationalization of the national education system of the Ministry of Education in collaboration with the Italian National Commission Italian National Commission for UNESCO.The Italian Ministry of Education, Professor Patrizio Bianchi, will open the celebration.the Secretary General of the National ItalianCommission UNESCO and The National Coordiator of Italy UNESCO ASPnet, will discuss the role of philosophy for next generation in the global contest.In the First Session, Luciano Floridi, philosopher, and Cristina Becchio, scientist, will speak about the importance of philosophy for reimaging the future and education.Inthe Second Session, experts,teachers,researchers,and students will discuss about new philosophical practices to make philosophy accessible to all. Ils sont fous, les Romains.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 479: Conversations on topics such as empathy, human connections, and kindness in adverse moments will be addressed in rich encounters of philosophical knowledge. From the perspective of Plato, Seneca, Epictetus and classical philosophers from the Greek and Latin cradle, New Acropolis teachers will reflect on our current historical moment. An opportune moment to take advantage of philosophical knowledge, from love to wisdom, to break barriers of difficulties, obtaining a more humanistic sense of life. In all, eight (8) professors will be part of New Acropolis' annual event.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 487: Jalpaiguri, India. ‘The Philosophy and Contribution of Contemporary Thinkers’by ByNorth Bengal University-Department of Philosophy.Lokmanya B.G. Tilak, Swami Vivekananda, Mahatma Gandhi, Sri Aurobindo, K.C. Bhattacharya, Vinoba Bhave, Pt. Deen Dayal Upadhyaya, Pt. Hanuman Prasad Podda. Chants from Bhagavad Gita.
xxx/ellauri148.html on line 501: 2) Naumenko O.A. Special meeting of the Philosophical Circle of the SNTL Department dedicated to the World Philosophy Day. Date: 19.11.2021 14.30 Topic: Philosophical aspects of the problem of artificial intelligence.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 54: Tung said he prefers teams with cross-cultural backgrounds. For example, Zhang Sheng, co-founder of Wish, is a Chinese who once studied in the U.S., while another co-founder of the company Peter Szulczewski is a Jew from east Europe. He explained that Americans tend to focus on domestic market and ignore overseas opportunities. But teams with multinational backgrounds are more likely to set their eyes on global market. For example, around 50% of Wish’s revenue comes from overseas market.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 105: Filosofi, politiikan tutkija Mikko Lahtinen kuvaa Himasta "valtiofilosofiksi", joka ei ole pohdinnoissaan kuitenkaan mennyt asioiden poliittisten ja yhteiskunnallisten syiden ytimiin. Hän toivoo, että Himanen tarkastelisi tiukemmin globaalin oikeudenmukaisuuden ja nykyisen kapitalistisen talousjärjestelmän välisiä suhteita. Filosofi Tere Vadén arvostelee Himasta lähinnä siitä, että tämä ei voi kirjoittaa vapaana filosofina ja laatia samalla raportteja valtionvallan tilauksesta. Jätkät on vaan kateita. Tai olivat, tuskin enää ovat.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 115: Wish on yhdysvaltalainen verkkokauppa ja mobiilisovellus, jolla on maailmanlaajuisesti yli 200 miljoonaa käyttäjää. Peter Szulczewski ja Danny Zhang perustivat Wishin vuonna 2011 ja sen omistaa ContextLogic Inc. Peter Szulczewski on edelleen Wishin toimitusjohtaja. Wish on maailmanlaajuisesti toimiva verkkokauppa, joka yhdistää asiakkaat ja kauppiaat ympäri maailman. Kauppiaat lataavat joka päivä uusia tuotteita myytäväksi Wish-sovellukseen.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 278: Iisa ja Valde teki tähän tarkoituxeen ison kiven päällä vaakaa 1951. Nykyinen emerituspölkkypää oli vasta pilke 50-luvun nuorten hyvinkääläisten perssilmässä. Pikkuruinen klapi. Vaaka myöhästyi 1,5 vuodella, tulikin leobarditäpläinen salonkileijona.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 360: According to the Anglo-Saxons, the film centers on the conflict between Judas and Jesus during the week of the crucifixion of Jesus. Needless to say, Neeley, Anderson, and Elliman were nominated for Golden Globe Awards in 1974 for their portrayals of Jesus, Judas, and Mary Magdalene, respectively. It attracted criticism from a few religious groups and received mixed reviews from critics.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 372: Nevertheless, the film as well as the musical were criticized by some religious groups. As a New York Times article reported, "When the stage production opened in October 1971, it was criticized not only by some Jews as anti-Semitic, but also by some Catholics and Protestants as blasphemous in its portrayal of Jesus as a young man who might even be interested in sex." A few days before the film version's release, the National Jewish Community Relations Advisory Council described it as an "insidious work" that was "worse than the stage play" in dramatizing "the old falsehood of the Jews' collective responsibility for the death of Jesus," and said it would revive "religious sources of anti-Semitism." Jesus argued in response that the film "never was meant to be, or claimed to be an authentic or deep theological work. Just humdrum everyday anti-semitism."
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 388: Pontius Pilate was also given some different perspectives. In the musical he does not want to execute Jesus, thinking he is just another nut case who doesn't deserve death and is utterly baffled why the mob wants him killed. He only goes through with the execution because he was given no other choice.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 394: Mary Magdalene (whose characterization as a former prostitute is Alternative Character Interpretation all by itself) gets scenes that show her to be spiritual and in tune with Jesus' message. However, seen through Judas' eyes, she comes off as a Yes-Woman constantly telling Jesus that "everything's alright" rather than confronting him about the building problems, as Judas tries to do.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 415: It probably originates from the old days, when the homosexuality taboo was serious enough that every gay pairing was considered a Crack Pairing, so when authors wrote same-sex characters as very intimate with each other, audiences largely accepted that they were just very good friends, and moved on, or when authors wrote outright references to homosexuality, most just laughed at the sheer absurdity of the thought.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 421: In the related trope called Foe Yay, even rivals or mortal enemies can get this treatment by fans and writers alike, especially if they have a more friendly past together, or one is inordinately obsessed with the other. In Fan Fic, this is the direct cause of many a Slash Fic.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 429: Judas is extremely bothered by Jesus's tolerance for letting Mary Magdalene "kiss you and stroke your hair" and consistently picks fights with her when they're both onstage. Thematically, his problem with Mary is that she represents the degradation he perceives Christ as having fallen into, but it's easy to read jealousy into the dynamic.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 453: The 2014 Swedish Arena Tour dials up the Ho Yay and breaks the knob off.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 469: "Corpsing" (also called "breaking") is actor-speak for having an unscripted fit of laughter onstage, so-called because the worst time to have the giggles is when one is playing a corpse. Corpsing doesn't necessarily mean that the material is especially funny (though, of course, it can be), or that the actors aren't taking it seriously; it just happens, and even excellent actors can corpse. Many actors try to cover this by covering their mouth and muffling the sounds they make. When this is done, a fit of laughter can rather haphazardly be turned into violent sobbing, with varying levels of success. Of course, that only helps if violent crying is appropriate for the scene (again, playing a corpse leaves you in trouble, as corpses don't cry either — usually).
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 477: Caiaphas and the other priests worry that if Jesus' followers launch a rebellion, Rome will retaliate by crushing Judea. Later, we see a mob of Judeans intimidating and manipulating Pontius Pilate, a Roman official. So, which is it? Are the Romans a ruthless occupying force that will smash Judea for any insubordination, or weak leaders seeking to pacify their subjects out of fear?
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 479: Both. The Romans are a government, and governments have to walk a fine line when it comes to dissent, because the people outnumber law enforcement, and killing or imprisoning lots of dissenters, while effective in the short term, means you have fewer subjects. Pilate could put down the mob with violence, but why would he do all that over one guy who, frankly, is kind of a problem for Rome, anyway? It doesn't help that Jesus does nothing to speak in his own defense: Pilate gets frustrated with Jesus' answers and eventually says good riddance to Jesus and his obvious death wish.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 481: However the Romans overall clearly have the upper hand in the relationship. It's probably worth keeping in mind that there was a Jewish rebellion against the Romans that took place not long after the crucifixion and...well, let's just say it didn't exactly succeed in overthrowing the Romans...
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 483: The Roman Empire has enough troops to brutally crush any Judean uprising (and indeed did so during the Jewish–Roman Wars that started only a few decades after Jesus's death). Pontius Pilate, the prefect of Judea, doesn't. If Judea rebels, there is a pretty good chance that Pilate will be killed by the mob, and even if he escapes he will be disgraced and his political career will come to an end. The fact that afterwards the Roman emperor will send in his legions to deal with Judea is cold comfort.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 485: Also, something of note is that, as much as he dislikes it, the mob is technically just calling him to do his job, which puts them mostly on the side of Rome ("We have no king but Caesar")...sort of. So by appeasing them THEN, he establishes himself as being both pro-Rome and pro-Jews.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 499: He obliged those who had faith in Dog to a radical morality wherein they distinguish solely between "duty or sin" in their every action.
xxx/ellauri149.html on line 503: In his 1887 essay "Jews and Indo-Germans", he wrote: “One would have to have a heart of steel to not feel sympathy for the poor Germans and, by the same token, to not hate the Jews, to not hate and despise those who – out of humanity! – advocate for the Jews or are too cowardly to crush these vermin. Trichinella and bacilli should not be negotiated with, trichinella and bacilli should also not be nurtured, they would be destroyed as quickly and as thoroughly as possible. The problem is, guys like Paul Böttinger are like lice, there is no way to exterminate them for good. Where there are simians, their lice will also thrive.
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 46: Tämä laiha Lucretia Collatina löytyi tämän päivän Hoblasta. Sen tarina on kerrottuna albumissa 153. Piirroxen on tuhertanut joku Cranach.
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 87: Her father Arsene Lupin was the grandson of the Marshal General of France, Maurice, Comte de Saxe, an out-of-wedlock son of Augustus II the Strong, king of Poland and elector of Saxony, and a cousin to the sixth degree to Kings Louis XVI, Louis XVIII and Charles X of France. This is probably where she got her very masculine gender expression. Unfortunately, Sand´s mother, Sophie-Victoire Delaborde, was a commoner, [citation was very badly needed], her mother was the daughter of a bird-seller, who, curiously enough, lived in the 'Street of the Birds' (Quai des Oiseaux) in Paris.
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 97: Sand was one of the women who wore men´s clothing without a permit, justifying it as being less expensive and far sturdier than the typical dress of a noblewoman at the time. Haha. In addition to being comfortable, Sand´s male attire enabled her to circulate more freely in Paris than most of her female contemporaries, and gave her increased access to venues from which women were often barred, even women of her social standing, like all-male steam baths. Also scandalous was Sand´s smoking tobacco in public; neither peerage nor gentry had yet sanctioned the free indulgence of women in such a habit, especially in public (though Franz Liszt´s paramour Marie d´Agoult affected this as well, smoking even larger cigars than George).
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 140: Likapippeli (Schmutztitel - lateinisch Antiporta) – seltener Schutztitel, Vortitel oder Vorsatztitel – wird der meist griffige Kurztitel des Werkes bezeichnet, der auf einer gesonderten, dem eigentlichen Titelblatt vorangestellten Seite aufgeführt ist. Diese zusätzliche Seite nennt sich Schmutztitelseite und ist die erste/oberste Seite des Buchblocks. Sie trägt in der Seitenzählung (Paginierung) die nicht ausgedruckte Nummer 1. Suojanimiölehti, kuten siivosti sanoo Kristiina-täti. Likapippeliä tarjoaa Ballsackin köyhä mutta hyvin varustettu aatelismies toista nuoruuttaan elävälle varakuningattarelle, majesteettiselle vanhalle ruusulle, jolla on korvat kuin tanssikengät ja sairaan kissan iho, mutta muuten kauniit varusteet.
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 145: Denis décapité aurait ensuite marché vers le nord pendant six kilomètres, sa tête sous le bras, traversant Montmartre jusqu'à un lieu qui s'appelle aujourd'hui Saint-Denis. À la fin de son trajet, il donna sa tête à une femme pieuse originaire de la noblesse romaine et nommée Catulla, puis s'écroula. On l'ensevelit à cet endroit précis et on y édifia une basilisque en son honneur.
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 203: Practically everyone knows Godard’s classic pronouncement, “All you need for a movie is a girl and a putz,” but a 1989 interview contains one of the more caustic charges Godard levels at cinema, that “Cinema is an ideology based on men living out through their imaginations what they could not do to women.” This chauvinist pig who openly played out his own marital problems with Anna-Kaarina in their collaborations of the ‘60s, now abrazes other toxic males for similar diversions.
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 232: The fictional title character, a priestess and the daughter of Hamilcar Barca, the foremost Carthaginian general, is the object of the obsessive lust of Matho, a leader of the mercenaries.
xxx/ellauri154.html on line 361: Ecological factors were also probably a precursor to eusociality. For example, the sponge-dwelling shrimp depend upon the sponge´s feeding current for food, termites depend upon dead, decaying wood, and naked mole rats depend upon tubers in the ground. These resources have patchy distributions in the environments of these animals. In places there is a surplus, in others next to nothing. This means that resources must be defended for the group to survive. These requirements make it a necessity to have high social order for the survival of the group.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 45: Anne Morrow Lindbergh, wife of ace aviator, Charles Lindberg was a renowned author. As an aviator she flew with Charles, assisting him as a navigator and radio operator, in many notable aviation milestones that he achieved. She was also the first American woman to obtain a glider pilots license in 1930. Her works included genres of poetry to non-fiction. She expressed her thoughts on distinct topics varying from solitude and contentment to youth and age, from the role of women in 20th century to love, marriage and peace.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 80: Born as Pranpriya Manobal on March 27, 1997 in Buriram Province, Thailand, she later illegally changed her name to Lalisa, meaning the one being praised, on the advice of a fortune teller in order to bring in prosperity. As an only child, she was raised by her Thai mother and Swiss stepfather. Lisa's mother is named Chitthip Brüschweiler. Her stepfather is Marco Brüschweiler, a renowned chef, currently active in Thailand. Lisa completed secondary education at Praphamontree School I and II.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 92: Outoa olin miltei varma että olin jo paasannut tästä parafiliasta, jota lukuisat tirkistelijäkirjailijat ovat edustaneet. Lyydian kuningas Kandaules oli niin kylästynyt vaimonsa Nyssen kallipygeeseen, jonka Jacob Jordaens on kuvannut oheisessa taulussa aivan jättimäisexi appelsiini-ihoisexi ruppaperseexi, että se halus näyttää sitä henkivartijalleen Gygeelle. Gyges kazoi Nyssen ja Kandauleen touhuja pää punaisena (nysse tulee!), seinäverhoon tuli iso kohouma. Sen kun Nysse äkkäsi, se kärmistyi ja antoi Gygeelle 2 vaihtoehtoa: joko tapan sut tai tapat ton ikävystyttävän kuninkaan ja nait sitten mut. Gyges teki työtä käskettyä. Kuinka ollakaan se preferoi jälkimmäistä vaihtoehtoa. Siitä tuli Gygeen jälkeen seuraava Lyydian kuningas. Ei yhtä rikas kuin Midas kuitenkaan.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 98: Jacob (Jacques) Jordaens was a Flemish painter, draughtsman and tapestry designer known for his history paintings, genre scenes and portraits. After Peter Paul Rubens and Anthony van Dyck, he was the leading Flemish Baroque painter of his day. Unlike those contemporaries he never travelled abroad to study Italian painting, and his career is marked by an indifference to their intellectual and courtly aspirations. In fact, except for a few short trips to locations in the Low Countries, he remained in Antwerp his entire life. As well as being a successful painter, he was a prominent designer of tapestries.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 107: In the seventeenth century, the story of King Candaules’s wife was seen as a moral lesson, warning against violations of the marital bedchamber. The theme was treated by the poet Jacob Cats in his Toneel vande mannelicke Achtbaerheyt, in which he devoted no less than eighty-six verses to the tale of Candaules and Gyges, and illustrates the scene in the royal bedchamber with a print by Pieter de Jode after Adriaen van de Venne. In the print the Queen is seen half naked from behind. Candaules is already in bed, and the Queen looks at Gyges, who is largely concealed behind the wallhangings. The moral of the story is clarified by a scene on a smaller scale in the background, showing Candaules being slain by Gyges. The print no doubt served as an inspiration for several other later renditions of the theme in Northern Netherlandish painting, including works by Frans van Mieris the Elderv, and Eglon van de Neervi.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 144: Kyltää on hurjan selkeästi hierarkinen pesädisipliini vastaan all against all anarkia. Mitäs tätä enää mäystämään. Pashtuwan ja somalien klaanit olivat häviävä välivaihe ennen kristikapitalistista länsiglobalisaatiota. Vai ovatko? Onko ne tulossa jo takaisin kun resut vähenevät eikä korko enää kasva korolle? Syysampiaiset ärtyvät kun ei kaikille enää tipu hunajaa kuningatarten pöydästä. Se jää nähtäväksi. Hyvällä onnella ei tarvi jäähä näkemään. Pääsee jäähylle.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 199: Itchelen kysymys on väärin asetettu: Mixi ei? Aistinvaraiset elukat syö ja väistelevät toisiaan. Pedosta se tuntuu tosi hyvältä, saalista se voi kyllä vähän kirpasta. Jonsei kirpasisi, saalis ei ymmärtäisi juosta karkuun. Siinä se. Sattuminen viivästyttää kuolemista. Elukat optimoituvat välttämään molempia, siinä koko juttu. Jos ne eivät optimoisi, ei niitä olisi, joku optimisti olisi jo syönyt ne. Ja tätä simppeliä maailman menoa rupee sitten joku ohimokiharainen laiha hederpoika suremaan. Sillä on ollut liian hyvät oltavat. Se on liian kauan syönyt muita esim kanoja tulematta syödyxi, että sen mielestä asiassa on jotain epäreilua. Ei ole. Kaikki muut elukat ottaa tän vaan annettuna eikä lähde sitä turhaan problematisoimaan. Tekevät vain parhaansa ja kazovat mihin se riittää. Se on apinalla ahneutta vittu, ja narsismia, sitäse on eikä mitään muuta. Ravintoketjun johtavana petona se on tottunut aina voittamaan.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 204: Baal Shem (Hebrew: בַּעַל שֵׁם, pl. Baalei Shem) is a title for a historical Jewish practitioner of Practical Kabbalah and miracle worker. Employing the names of God, angels, Satan and other spirits, Baalei Shem heal, enact miracles, perform exorcisms, treat various health issues, curb epidemics, protect people from disaster due to fire, robbery or the evil eye, foresee the future, decipher dreams, and bless those who sought his powers.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 218: With its emphasis on Divine Omnipresence, Hasidic philosophy sought to unify all aspects of spiritual and material life, to reveal their inner Divinity. Dveikut was therefore achieved not through ascetic practices that "broke" the material, but by sublimating materialism into Divine worship. Nonetheless, privately, when nobody was looking, many Hasidic Rebbes engaged in ascetic practices, in Hasidic thought for mystical reasons of bringing merit to the generation, rather than formerly as methods of personal elevation.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 226: The founder of Hasidism, the Baal Shem Tov, opposed the ethical practices of admonishment that could interpret fear of God as fear of punishment. In Hasidism such fear is seen as superficial, egotistical and misrepresentative of the Divine love for Creation. Hasidism sought to replace Jewish observance based on self-awareness with an overriding perception and joy of the omnipresent Divine (see Divine immanence).
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 235: Such material and spiritual fun with another person achieves its own manifold spiritual illumination and refinement of one's personality. Just as some traditional forms of Jewish thought gave emphasis to fear of punishment as a helpful contribution to beginning Jewish observance, before progressing to more mature levels, so too do some Jewish approaches advocate motivation from eternal reward in the Hereafter, or the more refined ideal of seeking spiritual and scholarly self-advancement through Torah study. Study of Torah is seen by Rabbinic Judaism as the pre-eminent spiritual activity, as it leads to all other mitzvot (Jewish observances). The more time spent in the yeshiva, the less vacuum-cleaning and taking-out of garbage at home. To seek personal advancement through learning is a commendable ideal of Rabbinic Judaism.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 345: In treating Jacob Frank, the most nihilistic of these late Sabbatians, Scholem strikes a curious note. He starts his essay by criticizing all others who had written on Sabbatianism for their lack of objectivity, often expressed in pejorative language. Yet, when he arrives at Jacob Frank, he suddenly sheds his objective tone and launches into an invective-filled description of Frank as a tyrannical and corrupt imposter. How to understand this jarring shift?
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 468: Martin Buber syntyi juutalaiseen perheeseen. Perhetausta antoi hänelle perinnöksi kiinnostukseen rabbiiniseen perinteeseen ja hasidismiin, joista varsinkin jälkimmäisellä on ollut suuri merkitys hänen älylliselle kehitykselleen. Buber aloitti opintonsa 1896 ja hän opiskeli monia aineita Wienin, Berliinin, Leipzigin ja Zürichin yliopistoissa ja teki vuonna 1904 väitöskirjansa, joka käsitteli yksilöllistymisen teorioita kahden mystikon, Nicolas Cusanuksen ja Jakob Böhmen tuotannossa.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 475: Martin Buberin dialogifilosofian historiallisia yhteyksiä voidaan nähdä luonnollisesti jo Sokrateessa, mutta varsinaisesti suurimpia vaikutteita filosofiseen ajatteluunsa Buber sai 1800-luvun filosofeilta, kuten Nietzscheltä, Kierkegaardilta, Feuerbachilta ja Jacobilta. Myös Kant on monin osin vaikuttava taustahahmo. 1700-luvun itäeurooppalaisella juutalaisliikkeellä hasidismilla on ollut Buberin ajatteluun vähintään yhtä suuri vaikutus kuin varsinaisilla filosofeilla. Selvää edeltäjää Buberin ajattelulla ei kuitenkaan ole. Samanaikaisesti Buberin kanssa tosin syntyi monella tavalla toisiaan muistuttavia dialogifilosofioita, mutta ilmeisen riippumattomina toisistaan
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 479: Perussanaparilla "Minä-Se" Buber kuvaa objektiin suuntautunutta suhdetta, jossa subjekti esimerkiksi havaitsee, tuntee, kuvittelee, tahtoo, aistii tai ajattelee jotain. Minä-Se-suhde on ”intentionaalinen” suhde, joka lähtee subjektista ja kohdistuu objektiin, jota subjekti havainnoi, luokittelee ja analysoi.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 481: Perussanapari "Minä-Sinä" puolestaan luo suhteen, jossa subjektilla ei ole enää mitään objektina. Usein kirjallisuudessa Minä-Sinä-suhdetta on kuvattu subjektin ja subjektin väliseksi suhteeksi. On kuitenkin muistettava, että Buber puhuu subjektista laajemmassa merkityksessä kuin yleensä. Vaikka Sinän sanovalla ei olekaan objektia, on hän kuitenkin yhteydessä johonkin, kai. Minä-Sinä-suhde sisältää kaiken, minkä Minä-Se-suhdekin, mutta Minä-Sinä-suhteessa ei toisen subjektin ominaisuuksia voida analysoida lankeamatta takaisin Se-suhteeseen. Buber kuvaa Minä-Sinä ja Minä-Se suhteen eroa esimerkiksi yksittäisten äänten ja melodian tai yksittäisten sanojen ja lauseen välisenä erona. Buberin mukaan Minä-Sinä-suhde kohtaa ihmisen "armosta ja tahdosta", se vaatii molemminpuolisuutta, molempien osapuolten Sinä-sanomista. Varsinaista huuhaata.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 505: Rund 40.000 Briefe sind aus der Korrespondenz von Martin Buber mit seinen Zeitgenossen erhalten. Martin ist mit allen seinen Freunden dialogicsch gesprochen, ungeachtet ob sie davon gewusst hatten.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 507: Hermann Karl Hesse (1877-1962), a Nobel Prize-winning German novelist and poet, is best known for his inspired explorations of self-understanding, spiritual realization, and psychology, particularly in Der Steppenwolf (1927), perhaps his best-known work.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 508: Hesse’s personal experience with psychoanalysis began when he sought therapy and refuge in a sanatorium after his father’s death in 1916, his first wife’s schizophrenia, and a serious illness of his son, Martin (not Mordechai). This began a long obsession with psychoanalysis, the influence of which appears in Demian (1919) and in his later work, which evidences his interest in Jungian concepts of introversion and extraversion, the collective unconscious, idealism, and the duality of human nature.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 581: Zum psychologischen Welt- und Menschenbild äußerte sich Buber in dem oft erwähnten, im Psychologischen Klub in Zürich 1923 gehaltenen Vortrag „Von der Verseelung der Welt“, welcher zeitlich einerseits mit dem Beginn seiner intensiven Auseinandersetzung mit der zeitgenössischen Psychotherapie, andererseits mit der Formulierung seines eigenen dialogischen Prinzips korrespondiert. Wie der Titel des Vortrags suggeriert, wird laut Buber in der Psychotherapie – im Rahmen des sogenannten „Psychologismus“ – der Welt und ihrem Netz von Beziehungen die „Seele“ quasi weggenommen und nur im Menschen selbst, in seiner „Psyche“ angesiedelt, wobei die Psychoanalyse sich nur mit den intrapsychischen Vorgängen inklusive der in ihnen gespiegelten Welt beschäftige. Buber ärgerte sich über drei wichtigen psychoanalytisch-tiefenpsychologischen Themen: das Wesen der Schuld, das Wesen der Religiosität und das Wesen des Unbewussten.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 583: Buber wirft beispielsweise den analytischen Schulen vor, dass sie eine „existentielle“, also reale Schuld der Menschen an dem Gott da oben nicht kennen bzw. sich mit dieser nicht befassen, sondern nur mit den neurotischen Schuldgefühlen, deren Existenz selbstverständlich auch von Buber selbst anerkannt wird.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 585: Im öffentlichen Ich-Du Dialog mit Rogers äußerte Buber relativ ausführlich seine Ideen über die Anwendung der Dialogik in der Psychotherapie, wobei es trotz Meinungsunterschieden und partiellen Missverständnissen auch viele Gemeinsamkeiten bzw. gegenseitige Ergänzungen mit Ginger --- nein, Fred --- Janice --- Buck --- Roy --- Prince --- Searle --- äsch, Carl Rogers gab.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 603: Binschwanger formuliert dementsprechend „das oberste Raumprinzip Wir“: „die Begegnung der Liebenden als Liebende räumlicht gerade den 'Raum' des liebenden Miteinanderseins, ist sie doch nur ein anderer Ausdruck für das liebende Einräumen, nämlich für die Erschliessung des Wir-Raumes, der Räumlichkeit des Ineinander, des Ich im Inneren von Dir.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 614: Orthodox Judaism is largely defined by a firm belief that the Torah and the laws contained within it are of divine authority, and therefore should be subjected to a strict interpretation and observance. Orthodox Judaism is a large branch of Judaism, and until fairly recently, most Jews could be said to be Orthodox.
xxx/ellauri157.html on line 622: Hasidic Judaism is a movement within Haredi Judaism that focuses on the study of the spiritual and joyful elements of the Talmud. It is like Hewbrew Pentecostal movement. It has its roots in the anti-Kabbalah movements of the 13th century. Hasidim focus on a loving and joyful observance of the laws laid out in the Torah, and a boundless love for everything God created. Members live in small, separate communities, and are often noted for their distinctive clothing.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 240: She put not on her robes of black
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 241: Nor her robes of brown
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 242: But she put on her robes of white
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 308: Only a few months later she was unemployed again and moved to London in the autumn of 1777. She started to work for the Budd family in Chatham Place, Blackfriars, London, and began acting at the Drury Lane theatre in Covent Garden. She also worked as a maid for actresses, among them Mary Robinson. Emma next worked as a model and dancer at the "Goddess of Health" for James Graham, a Scottish "quack" doctor.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 316: Seeing an opportunity to make some money by taking a cut of sales, Greville sent her to sit for his friend, the painter George Romney, who was looking for a new model and muse. It was then that Emma became the subject of many of Romney's most famous portraits, and soon became London's biggest celebrity. So began Romney's lifelong obsession with her, sketching her nude and clothed in many poses that he later used to create paintings in her absence. Through the popularity of Romney's work and particularly of his striking-looking young model, Emma became well known in society circles, under the name of "Emma Hart". She was witty, intelligent, a quick learner, elegant and, as paintings of her attest, extremely beautiful. Romney was fascinated by her looks and ability to adapt to the ideals of the age. Romney and other artists painted her in many guises, foreshadowing her later "attitudes".
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 318: In 1783, Greville needed to find a rich wife to replenish his finances, and found a fit in the form of eighteen-year-old heiress Henrietta Middleton. Emma would be a problem, as he disliked being known as her lover (this having become apparent to all through her fame in Romney's artworks), and his prospective wife would not accept him as a suitor if he lived openly with Emma Hart.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 320: To be rid of Emma, Greville persuaded his uncle, younger brother of his mother, Sir William Hamilton, British Envoy to Naples, to take her off his hands. Greville's marriage would be useful to Sir William, as it relieved him of having Greville as a poor relation. To promote his plan, Greville suggested to Sir William that Emma would make a very pleasing mistress, assuring him that, once married to Henrietta Middleton, he would come and fetch Emma back. Sir William, then 55 and newly widowed, had arrived back in London for the first time in over five years. Emma's famous beauty was by then well known to Sir William, so much so that he even agreed to pay the expenses for her journey to ensure her speedy arrival. A great collector of antiquities and beautiful objects, he took interest in her as another acquisition. He had long been happily married until the death of his wife in 1782, and he liked female companionship. His home in Naples was well known all over the world for hospitality and refinement. He needed a hostess for his salon, and from what he knew about Emma, he thought she would be the perfect choice.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 326: They were married on 6 September 1791 at St Marylebone Parish Church, then a plain small building, having returned to England for the purpose and Sir William having gained the King's consent. She was twenty-six and he was sixty. Although she was obliged to use her legal name of Amy Lyon on the marriage register, the wedding gave her the title Lady Hamilton which she would use for the rest of her life. Hamilton's public career was now at its height and during their visit he was inducted into the Privy Council. Shortly after the ceremony, Romney painted his last portrait of Emma from life, The Ambassadress, after which he plunged into a deep depression and drew a series of frenzied sketches of Emma.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 338: Upon arrival in London on 8 November, the three of them took suites at Nerot's Hotel after a missed communication from Nelson to his wife about receiving the party at their home, Roundwood. Lady Nelson and Nelson's father arrived and they all dined at the hotel, with Fanny deeply unhappy to see Emma pregnant. The affair soon became public knowledge, and to the delight of the newspapers, Fanny did not accept the affair as placidly as Sir William. Emma was winning the media war at that point, and every fine lady was experimenting with her look. Nelson contributed to Fanny's misery by being cruel to her when not in Emma's company. Sir William was mercilessly lampooned in the press, but his sister observed that he doted on Emma and she was very attached to him.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 354: Nelson had been offered the position of Commander-in-Chief of the Mediterranean Fleet, and they rushed to have Horatia christened at Marylebone Parish Church before he left. On her baptism record, her name was recorded as Horatia Nelson Thompson, and her date of birth falsely recorded as 29 October 1800 in order to continue the pretence that she had been born in Naples and was godchild of Emma and Nelson, according to Kate Williams and based on an unpublished letter; however the only publicly available transcription of the record shows 29 October 1801. Nelson later wrote a letter explaining that the child was an orphan "left to his care and protection" in Naples.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 360: Emma received several marriage proposals during 1804, all wealthy men, but she was still in love with Nelson and believed that he would become wealthy with prize money and leave her rich in his will, and she refused them all. She continued to entertain and help Nelson's relatives, especially William and Sarah's "obstreperous son Horace" and their daughter Charlotte, who was referred to as Emma's "foster daughter" in a letter. Nelson urged her to keep Horatia at Merton, and when his return seemed imminent in 1804, Emma ran up bills on furnishing and decorating Merton. Five-year-old Horatia came to live at Merton in May 1805. There were also reports that she holidayed with Emma Carew.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 362: After a brief visit to England in August 1805, Nelson once again had to return to service. Emma received letters from him on 1, 7 and 13 October. On the ship, he wrote a note intended as a codicil to his will requesting that, in return for his legacy to King and Country that they should give Emma "ample provision to maintain her rank in life", and that his "adopted daughter, Horatia Nelson Thompson...use in future the name of Nelson only".
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 364: On 21 October 1805, Nelson's fleet defeated a joint Franco-Spanish naval force at the Battle of Trafalgar. Nelson was seriously wounded during the battle and died three hours later. When the news of his death arrived in London, a messenger was sent to Merton Place to bring the news to Lady Hamilton. She later recalled,
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 382: In early 1813 she petitioned the Prince of Wales, the government and friends, but all of her requests failed and she was obliged to auction off many of her possessions, including many Nelson relics, at low prices. However she continued to borrow money to keep up appearances. Public opinion turned against her after the Letters of Lord Nelson to Lady Hamilton were published in April 1814.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 384: Emma was anxious to leave the country, but owing to the risk of arrest if she travelled on a normal ferry, she and Horatia hid from her creditors for a week before boarding a private vessel bound for Calais on 1 July 1814, with £50 in her purse. Initially taking apartments at the expensive Dessein's Hotel, she initially kept up a social life and fine dining by relying on creditors. Her old housekeeper, Dame Francis, came to run the household and hired other servants. But soon she was deeply in debt and suffering from longstanding health problems, including stomach pains, nausea and diarrhoea. She turned to the Roman Catholic church and joined the St Pierre congregation.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 557: Francesco rinunciò alle attrattive mondane, vivendo gioiosamente come un "ignorante", un "pazzo", dimostrando come la sua obiezione ai valori egemoni della società secolare di allora potesse generare una perfetta letizia. In questo senso il suo esempio aveva un che di sovversivo rispetto alla mentalità del tempo.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 558: Questa nuova «forma di vita» attirò anche le donne: la prima fu Chiara Scifi, figlia del nobile assisiate Favarone di Offreduccio degli Scifi.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 586: One of the roles of Satan, in the story, is to force the human race to mature faster than we would otherwise. Whether an individual believes the story or not is up to them of course. Other roles include identifying the wicked and disposing of them. The role of Satan was very much to create fear and obedience as a means of the Church maintaining its control over the flock so to speak.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 592: I heard Dawkins once quoting a priest he was having dinner with who had served in the hills of Papua New Guinea or someone like that the bible often mentions flocks and sheep/lambs/flock in terms of the congregation which was a problem there as many of these people had never seen a sheep they all had pigs. So the priest would start the Sunday Sermon with something like “Welcome swine”.
xxx/ellauri165.html on line 658: "but the wicked, who know not God, and obey not the gospel of Jesus Christ, shall be cast into eternal torments, and punished with everlasting destruction from the presence of the Lord, and from the glory of his power." (Chapter XXXIII, Of the Last Judgment)
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 59: Finally, God tells Moses to get water for the Israelites from a rock by speaking to the rock (Numbers 20:8). But Moses, being vexed by the complaining of the Israelites, instead of speaking to the rock as God commanded, strikes the rock twice with the staff. Because Moses did not obey God's command to speak to the rock, implying lack of faith, God punished Moses by not letting him enter into the Promised Land (Numbers 20:12). Taisit jo mainita albumissa 64.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 63: The staff with which Jacob crossed the Jordan is identical with that which Judah gave to his daughter-in-law, Tamar (Gen. xxxii. 10, xxxviii. 18). It is likewise the holy rod with which Moses worked (Ex. iv. 20, 21), with which Aaron performed wonders before Pharaoh (Ex. vii. 10), and with which, finally, David slew the giant Goliath (I Sam. xvii. 40). David left it to his descendants, and the Davidic kings used it as a scepter until the destruction of the Temple, when it miraculously disappeared. When the Messiah comes it will be given to him for a scepter in token of his authority over the heathen. (And we don't mean INRI here.)
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 74: Mythological objects encompass a variety of items (e.g. weapons, armor, clothing) found in mythology, legend, folklore, tall tale, fable, religion, spirituality, superstition, paranormal, and pseudoscience from across the world. This list will be organized according to the category of object.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 111: Astronomical objects
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 116: Category:Magical objects by type Category:Fictional objects by type
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 120: Marvel Comics magical objects (25 P, 7 F) Fictional other body parts (34 P)
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 132: B Magical objects (6 C, 58 P)
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 136: Black Crochan Fictional robots (12 C, 122 P)
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 138: Broom Sentient objects in fiction (5 C, 22 P)
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 157: Magical objects in Harry Potter Rings of Power Triforce
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 225: Laughing is ascribed unto him, according to the language of men, as the Jewish writers speak (d), by an anthropopathy; in the same sense as he is said to repent and grieve, Genesis 6:6; and expresses his security from all their attempts, Job 5:22; and the contempt he has them in, and the certain punishment of them, and the aggravation of it; who will not only then laugh at them himself, but expose them to the laughter and scorn of others, Proverbs 1:26;
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 299: Shechinah שכינה (also spelled Shekhinah) is derived from the word shochen שכן, “to dwell within.” The Shechinah is Cod or that which Cod is dwelling within. Sometimes we translate Shechinah as “The Divine Presence.” The word Shechinah is feminine, and so when we refer to Cod as the Shechinah, we say “She.” Of course, we’re still referring to the same One Cod, just in a different modality. After all, you were probably wondering why we insist on calling Cod “He.” We’re not talking about a being limited by any form—certainly not a body that could be identified as male or female. "It" would be better, only it reminds one too much of Freud's id. "They" would sound dangerously polytheistic.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 312: If you’ve ever set out to clean up a teenager’s room, you can probably relate to the following: Daunted by the task ahead of you, you cleverly start with the big stuff. Having dislodged some furniture, moving them into appropriate corners, tossed a few cardboard boxes into recycling, and discovering that, yes, there is a floor down there, only then can you really get started. But that’s also when it becomes apparent just how ugly this mess really is. Now is time for the scraping, grinding, elbow grease and harsh chemicals. The hardest tasks are always left for last.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 318: It is probable that after the entrance into Canaan this glory-cloud settled in the tabernacle upon the ark of the covenant in the most holy place. We have, however, no special reference to it till the consecration of the temple by Solomon, when it filled the whole house with its glory, so that the priests could not stand to minister ( 1 Kings 8:10-13 ; 2 Chr. 1 Kings 5:13 1 Kings 5:14 ; 7:1-3 ). Probably it remained in the first temple in the holy of holies as the symbol of Jehovah's presence so long as that temple stood. It afterwards disappeared. (See CLOUD .)
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 325: "A temple for your habitation", where the Greek text (Koinē Greek: ναὸν τῆς σῆς σκηνώσεως) suggests a possible parallel understanding, and where σκήνωσις skēnōsis "a tent-building", a variation on an early loanword from Phoenician (Ancient Greek: ἡ σκηνή skēnē "tent"), is deliberately used to represent the original Hebrew or Aramaic term. (Eli skene! Varmaan pyhä henki on jotenkin tästä stailattu. Vaika spiritus on maskuliini, ja koiraanhommiinhan se joutuukin. Toisaalta sen hyvä piirre on, että se on aika hahmoton, ei lähde neizyt Maarian suhteen fantasiat liikaa laukkaamaan.) In the post-temple era usage of the term shekhinah may provide a solution to the problem of Cod being omnipresent and thus not dwelling in any one place. (Jepjep:) The concept of shekhinah is also associated with the concept of the Holy Spirit in Judaism (ruach ha-kodesh).
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 401: Some say that his responsa allows people to obtain "clear pictures of his personality," and shows Rashi as a kind, gentle, humble, and liberal man.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 421: The Tosafot do not constitute a continuous commentary, but rather (like the "Dissensiones" to the Roman Code of the first quarter of the twelfth century) deal only with difficult passages of the Talmud. Single sentences are explained by quotations which are taken from other Talmudic treatises and which seem at first glance to have no connection with the sentences in question. On the other hand, sentences which seem to be related and interdependent are separated and embodied in different treatises. The Tosafot can be understood only by those who are well advanced in the study of the Talmud, for the most entangled discussions are treated as though they were simple. Glosses explaining the meaning of a word or containing a grammatical observation are very rare.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 423: The actual father of the tosafot in France was Jacob b. Meir, known colloquially as Rabbeinu Tam, whose style was adopted by his successors. Hei tää oli se Rashin lisäxi toinen heppu jonka ärhäkämpiä lauseita oli toisessa tefil-laatikossa.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 446: The earliest known tefillin were tiny and probably worn all day, except Saturdays. They were found together with other Dead Sea Scrolls in the Judean desert, in the mid-twentieth century. They were dated by archaeologists as far back as the 1st or 2nd centuries BCE. Although their texts are more varied than rabbinic tefillin, it is clear that they are based on a specific understanding of the same four verses noted above as associated by the rabbis with the tefillin ritual.
xxx/ellauri166.html on line 448: Why was the Song of Moses (sehän oli se Deuteronomian loppuluritus!) deemed suitable as a tefillin parchment? In all likelihood because both the second paragraph of the Shema, as well as the verses immediately after the Song of Moses in Parashat Ha’azinu, contain references to length of days. A contribution to the wearer's longevity. Nobody is in a particular hurry to get to Paradise. Ei kiirettä kuin pirulla Heinolan markkinoille. Hiivitään ennemminkin hiljaa kuin tiaisen kivittäjä. In conclusion, The archaeological evidence, together with consideration of various biblical passages and even of halakhah, suggests that tefillin were originally practiced as a longevity amulet. Lisää aiheesta: https://www.thetorah.com/article/the-origins-of-tefillin
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 78: obaruzzi.altervista.org/blog/wp-content/uploads/2018/11/A.-Cabanel_Morte_di_Francesca_da_Rimini_e_di_Paolo_Malatesta.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 264: Pikku ruåzalainen folkhem-mys Folk i Ångest ei tyydyttänyt Hoblan kriitikkoa nimeltä "Crister". Pahin vika oli, ettei kriitikko osannut ratkaista mihkä "genreen" tämä pätkä kuuluisi: onko se komedia, draama, draamakomedia, poliisisarja, vai mitä muuta vielä? Ainexia olis vaikka mihin, mutta ei tälläänen potpurri tule kysymyxeen. Komediaxi ei siitä ole koska röhönauru jäi puuttumaan. No keneltä jäi keneltä ei, kyllä mua monessa kohtaa kovastikin nauratti, muttei välttämättä samoissa kohdissa kuin missä "Crister" blaseeratusti ehkä hymähti. Mixi heppu oli pukeutunut jänisturriasuun? Se ei ollut juonellisesti perusteltua. Kolme tähteä, koska tekijät on kuitenkin nimekkäitä.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 292: lsä oli pitkän aikaa hiljaa ja ajattelin ettei hän ollut kuullut. Mutta sitten hän sanoi: "Se on kaikkein suurin salaisuus. Pyhät miehetkään eivät kyenneet luotaaman sitä (naisista puhumattakaan). Niin kauan kuin ihminen kärsii hän ei pysty ratkaisemaan kärsimyksen ongelmaa. Jobkaan ei saanut siihen vastausta vaan pelkkää öykkäröintiä. Mooses itse ei sitä tiennyt vaikka kysyi. Totuus on että ruumis ja kärsimys tarkoittavat samaa. Miten vapaa valinta voisi olla olemassa ilman rangaistusta väärän valitsemisesta ja palkintoa siitä että tekee valintansa oikein? Kaiken tämän kärsimyxen takana on Jumalan loputon armo." Ei pidä hoputtaa harmoa vaan odottaa kärsivällisesti loppua.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 311: Tilaat kotiin paperista sanomalehteä.
Kylä niin, vaikka Hoblakin on nyt niin vitun oikeistolainen, että tekis mieli katkaista sekin tilaus. Mutta mihin sitten kala kääritään?
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 372: Ne olivat samanlaisia sahramipullia kuin piispa Berkeley. Tai Sabbetai Tsevi ja sen myöhäisempi kopio Jakob Frank. Näistä juipeista on näissä albumeissa aiemminkin paasattu. Pitkänenäinen Gershom Scholem kunnostautui muun muassa Sabbetai Zevin elämäkerturina, ja vähän Frankinkin.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 440: In August 1798, George Washington received a letter as well as a copy of John Robison’s Proofs of a Conspiracy from George Snyder. This led to a brief exchange between the two men. Luckily the insect-looking Historians were on the ball and wrote them down.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 441: In January 1800, Thomas Jefferson received a copy of Abbé Augustin Barruel ‘s Memoirs Illustrating the History of Jacobinism and also commented on the book in a letter to Bishop James Madison.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 447: There are three letters mentioning the Bavarian Illuminati written by George Washington to George Washington Snyder in response to a August, 1798 letter which came with a copy of John Robison’s anti- Illuminati book, Proofs of Conspiracy. The book itself was found in Washington’s library at his death.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 459: It was some Time since that a Book fell into my Hands entituled “Proofs of a Conspiracy &c. by John Robison,” which gives a full Account of a Society of Freemasons, that distinguishes itself by the Name “of Illuminati,” whose Plan is to overturn all Government and all Religion, even natural; and who endeavour to eradicate every Idea of a Supreme Being, and distinguish Man from Beast by his Shape only. A Thought suggested itself to me, that some of the Lodges in the United States might have caught the Infection, and might cooperate with the Illuminati or the Jacobine Club in France. Fauchet is mentioned by Robison as a zealous Member: and who can doubt of Genet and Adet? Have not these their Confidants in this Country? They use the same Expressions and are generally Men of no Religion. Upon serious Reflection I was led to think that it might be within your Power to prevent the horrid Plan from corrupting the Brethren of the English Lodge ove
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 470: Sir: Many apologies are due to you, for my not acknowledging the receipt of your obliging favour of the 22d. Ulto, and for not thanking you, at an earlier period, for the Book you had the goodness to send me.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 476: “Some Weeks ago I sent you a Letter with Robison’s Proof of a Conspiracy which I hope you have received. I have since been more confirmed in the Ideas I had suggested to you concerning an Order of Men, who in Germany have distinguished themselves by the Names of Illuminati—German Union—Reading Societies—and in France by that of the Jacobine-Club, that the same are now existing in the United States.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 478: It also occurred to me that you might have had Ideas to that Purport when you disapproved of the Meetings of the Democratic-Societies, which appeared to me to be a Branch of that Order, though many Members may be entirely ignorant of the Plan. Those Men who are so much attached to French Principles, have all the Marks of Jacobinism. They first cast off all religious Restraints, and then became fit for perpetrating every Act of Inhumanity. And, it is remarkable, that most of them are actually Scoffers at all religious Principles. It is said that the ‘Lodge Theodore in Bavaria became notorious for the many bold and dangerous Sentiments in Religion and Politics that were uttered in their Harangues, and its Members were remarkable for their Zeal in making Proselytes’; (and no Wonder since the Order was to rule the World.) Is not there a striking Similarity between their Proceedings and those of many Societies that oppose the Measures of our present Government?
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 480: Even in this small Place the French-Faction is very numerous—their Expressions are like those of Bloody-Lutetia [Lutetia Parisiorum, or Paris]: their Sentiments in exact Unison with those of the Jacobine Club: their Hearts panting for Faggots and Guillotines. The Foundation of their Sanctuary is laid with Lies, and every Stone of the Superstructure reared with Falsehood. They are laboriously employed to excite Discord—to extinguish public Virtue—to break down the Barriers of Religion—to establish Atheism, and work the Downfall of our Civil—and Religious Liberty. Should their perfidious Schemes succeed (I tremble even at the Imagination of the Consequences) what would become of our Columbia?”
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 484: “Sir: It is more than a fortnight since I acknowledged the receipt of your first letter, on the subject of the Illuminati and thanked you for Robinson’s account of that society. It went to the post office as usual addressed to the Rev’d Mr Snyder, at Frederick Town Maryland. If it had not been received before this mishap must have attended it, of which I pray you to advise me, as it could not have been received, at the date of your last, not being mentioned.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 488: Having now received Washington’s initial reply, Snyder wrote back on October 17:
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 492: “I should be very happy in your Excellency’s good Opinion, that the Contagion of Illuminatism or Jacobinism had not yet reached this Country; but when I consider the anarchical and seditious Spirit, that shewed itself in the United States from the Time M. Genet and Fauchet (who certainly is of the Order) arrived in this Country and propagated their seditious Doctrines, which the illuminated Doctor from Birmingham has been zealously employed to strengthen, I confess I cannot divest myself of my Suspicions: yet I trust that the Alwise and Omnipotent Ruler of the Universe will so dispose the Minds of the People of these United States that true Religion and righteous Government may remain the Privileges of this Nation!
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 494: I cannot conclude without acquainting your Excellency that I have made Extracts from ‘Robison’s Proofs of a Conspiracy,’ and arranged them in such a Manner as to give a compendious Information to the Public of the dangerous and pernicious Plan of the ‘Illuminati or Jacobins,’ and by some Remarks to caution them against it. I had them published in ‘Bartgis’s Federal Gazette’ of this Place, from which they were copied and inserted into the ‘Baltimore Federal Gazette[’] of the 9th Inst.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 500: Surely realizing that Snyder was probably a little nut, Washington wrote his “This will be my last post on this thread” letter to Snyder strongly hinting that he was a busy man. (Note: Washington was the richest man in the United States and the richest US President in history):
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 502: Mount Vernon, October 24, 1798.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 505: Revd Sir: I have your favor of the 17th. instant before me; and my only motive to trouble you with the receipt of this letter, is to explain, and correct a mistake which I perceive the hurry in which I am obliged, often, to write letters, have led you into.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 507: It was not my intention to doubt that, the Doctrines of the Illuminati, and principles of Jacobinism had not spread in the United States. On the contrary, no one is more truly satisfied of this fact than I am.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 509: The idea that I meant to convey, was, that I did not believe that the Lodges of Free Masons in this Country had, as Societies, endeavoured to propagate the diabolical tenets of the first, or pernicious principles of the latter (if they are susceptible of seperation). That Individuals of them may have done it, or that the founder, or instrument employed to found, the Democratic Societies in the United States, may have had these objects; and actually had a seperation of the People from their Government in view, is too evident to be questioned.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 523: Memoirs Illustrating the History of Jacobinism (Read it here, buy it here)
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 530: Wishaupt seems to be an enthusiastic Philanthropist. He is among those (as you know the excellent Price and Priestley also are) who believe in the indefinite perfectibility of man. He thinks he may in time be rendered so perfect that he will be able to govern himself in every circumstance so as to injure none, to do all the good he can, to leave government no occasion to exercise their powers over him, & of course to render political government useless. This you know is Godwin’s doctrine, and this is what Robinson, Barruel & Morse had called a conspiracy against all government.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 533: acter was the object of Jesus Christ. That his intention was simply to reinstate natural religion, & by diffusing the light of his morality, to teach us to govern ourselves. His precepts are the love of god & love of our neighbor.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 536: He believes the Free masons were originally possessed of the true principles & objects of Christianity, & have still preserved some of them by tradition, but much disfigured. The means he proposes to effect this improvement of human nature are `to enlighten men, to correct their morals & inspire them with benevolence. Secure of our success, sais he, we abstain from violent commotions. To have foreseen the happiness of posterity & to have prepared it by irreproachable means, suffices for our felicity.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 540: As Wishaupt lived under the tyranny of a despot & priests, he knew that caution was necessary even in spreading information, & the principles of pure morality. He proposed therefore to lead the Free masons to adopt this object & to make the objects of their institution the diffusion of science & virtue. He proposed to initiate new members into his body by gradations proportioned to his fears of the thunderbolts of tyranny. This has given an air of mystery to his views, was the foundation of his banishment, the subversion of the masonic order, & is the colour for the ravings against him of Robinson, Barruel & Morse, whose real fears are that the craft would be endangered by the spreading of information, reason, & natural morality among men.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 542: This subject being new to me, I have imagined that if it be so to you also, you may receive the same satisfaction in seeing, which I have had in forming the analysis of it: & I believe you will think with me that if Wishaupt had written here, where no secrecy is necessary in our endeavors to render men wise & virtuous, he would not have thought of any secret machinery for that purpose. As Godwin, if he had written in Germany, might probably also have thought secrecy & mysticism prudent. I will say nothing to you on the late revolution of France, which is painfully interesting. Perhaps when we know more of the circumstances which gave rise to it, & the direction it will take, Buonaparte, its chief organ, may stand in a better light than at present.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 552: Most famously, a passage from Robert Anton Wilson and Robert Shea’s The Eye in the Pyramid, the first book of The Illuminatus! Trilogy, describes Adam Weishaupt killing off George Washington and taking his place as President of the United States:
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 572: With the whole world watching, the three major news networks brought the show into millions of Americans’ living rooms. They covered the ensuing mayhem which sparked a national debate about objectivity and journalistic integrity. Senator Abraham Ribicoff only saw textbook police brutality and Gestapo tactics, being an east coast kike. But millions of flyover state Middle Americans, the “silent majority,” saw different.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 594: By early October of 1968, CBS received 8,670 letters about Chicago, and 60 Minutes’ Harry Reasoner reported that the mail ran 11-to-1 against the network. A viewer in Ohio wrote, “I’ve never seen such a disgusting display of one-sided reporting in all of the years I’ve watched television.” From South Carolina, a letter writer griped, “Your coverage was … slanted in favor of the hoodlums and beatniks and slurred the police trying to preserve order.” A North Carolina viewer complained that, “When a great network refers to trouble makers as THESE YOUNG PEOPLE and in such a … tender tone, that is bias.” A New Yorker even suggested that the police had engaged in righteous violence: “Our Lord whipped the money lenders out of the temple. Are you going to accuse Him of brutality?”
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 596: The notion that simply showing police violence was evidence of liberal bias didn’t begin with Chicago. It traces back rather directly to TV coverage of civil rights, when white Southerners complained that the networks ignored their perspective and were manipulated by publicity seekers within the movement. By the late 1950s, many of the same people who would later object to the network’s coverage in Chicago had already taken to calling CBS the “Communist” or “Coon” or “Colored Broadcasting Company.” The same bigoted wordplay made NBC the “Nigger Broadcasting Company.” Alabama’s Bull Connor summed up the situation with an aphorism that wouldn’t seem out of place in some conservative circles today: “The trouble with this country is communism, socialism and journalism.”
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 602: Journalists face just the same old challenges than they did in Chicago in 1968. As the president vilifies the media as “the enemy of the people,” and reporters have occasion to attend his rallies with a security detail in tow, it’s clear that the specter of violence again looms large. There is also ferocious disagreement over the meaning of what we view on social media or television, a disagreement that clearly is not native to America, but brought in by the white immigrants. What is obvious to some is not to others, who would contend, for example, that “truth is not truth but alternative truth, " or "news is not news but fake news", or "election is not a vote but a steal".
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 606: Ewige Blumenkraft (German: "eternal flower power" or "flower power forever") is given in Robert Shea and Robert Anton Wilson´s 1975 Illuminatus! Trilogy as a slogan or password of the Illuminati. Ewige Blumenkraft und ewige Schlangenkraft is also offered in Illuminatus! as the complete version of this motto. The text translates "Schlangenkraft" as "serpent power"; thus "Ewige Blumenkraft und ewige Schlangenkraft" means "eternal flower power and eternal serpent power" and may allude to the conjoinment of cross and rose within the alchemical furnace. In this interpretation, the authors seem to suggest sexual magic as the secret or a secret of the Illuminati.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 608: Robert Joseph Shea (February 14, 1933 – March 10, 1994) was an American novelist and former journalist best known as co-author with Robert Anton Wilson of the science fantasy trilogy Illuminatus!. It became a cult success and was later turned into a marathon-length stage show put on at the British National Theatre and elsewhere. In 1986 it won the Prometheus Hall of Fame Award. Shea went on to write several action novels based in exotic historical settings.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 616: Robert Anton Wilson (born Robert Edward Wilson; January 18, 1932 – January 11, 2007 - why did he change Edward to Anton? Mystery!) was an American author, futurist, and self-described agnostic mystic. Recognized within Discordianism as an Episkopos, pope and saint, Wilson helped publicize Discordianism through his writings and interviews.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 620: The Illuminatus! Trilogy is a series of three novels by American writers Robert Shea and Robert Anton Wilson, first published in 1975. The trilogy is a satirical, postmodern, science fiction–influenced adventure story; a drug-, sex-, and magic-laden trek through a number of conspiracy theories, both historical and imaginary, related to the authors´ version of the Illuminati. The narrative often switches between third- and first-person perspectives in a nonlinear narrative. It is thematically dense, covering topics like counterculture, numerology, and Discordianism.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 627: The religion has been likened to Zen based on similarities with absurdist interpretations of the Rinzai school, as well as Taoist philosophy. Discordianism is centered on the idea that both order and disorder are illusions imposed on the universe by the human nervous system, and that neither of these illusions of apparent order and disorder is any more accurate or objectively true than the other.
xxx/ellauri167.html on line 636: Diskordianismin teologiaan ovat vaikuttaneet paljon mm. Timothy Learyn ihmismieltä käsittelevät teoriat. Learyn ns. kahdeksan piirin mallia ihmisen tietoisuudesta on hyödyntänyt myös Robert Anton Wilson, joka on tiettävästi tunnetuin Diskordianismin popularisoija. Erityisesti Wilsonin yhdessä Robert Shean kanssa kirjoittama Illuminatus!-trilogia on tehnyt diskordianismia tunnetuksi ympäri maailman.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 67: The most widely discussed application of the phrase of recent times came at the crash of the Soviet Union. For Gorbachov, the new world order dealt almost exclusively with nuclear disarmament and security arrangements. He would then expand the phrase to include United Nations strengthening and great power cooperation on a range of North–South economic and security problems (meaning how to keep the spooks, ragheads and squeaky indians down and out). Implications for NATO, the Warsaw Pact, and European integration were subsequently included.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 88: Europe was seen as a royal pain in the arse, a rival for U.S. attentions to neo-capitalist Russia. They should be left to build their own pathetic old world order without Freedom Fries while the U.S. would watch and sneer in the sidelines. The problem was that U.S. presence in Germany was no longer paying off and the Persian Gulf crisis showed how unreliable those fuckers were. Europe was discussing the European Community, the CSCE warming up relations with the Russkies. Gorbachev even proposed an all-European security council, in effect superseding the increasingly irrelevant NATO. Aargh!
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 91: A very few could really believe in a bi-polar new order of U.S. power and United Nations moral authority, the first as global policeman, the second as global judge and jury. The order would be collectivist in which decisions and responsibility would be shared. LOL. Pat Buchanan predicted that the Persian Gulf War would in fact be the demise of the new world order, the concept of United Nations peacekeeping and the U.S.´s role as global policeman. How ridiculous! U.S. can perfectly well server as policeman, judge, jury, and henchman in one person. In fact, the deeper reality of the new world order was the U.S. emergence "as the single greatest power in a multipolar world".
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 100: Following the rise of Boris Yeltsin eclipsing Gorbachev and the election victory of Clinton over Bush, the term "new world order" fell from common usage. It is a republican logo after all like law and order and MAGA. It was replaced by competing similar concepts about how the post-Cold War order would develop. Prominent among these were the ideas of the "era of globalization", the "unipolar moment", the "end of history" and the "Clash of Civilizations".
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 104: Xi Jinping, China´s paramount leader, has called for a new world order, in his speech to the Boao Forum for Asia, on April 2021. He criticized US global leadership and its interference on other countries' internal affairs. “The rules set by one or several countries should not be imposed on others, and the unilateralism of individual countries should not give the whole world a rhythm,” he said.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 115: Uuden maailmanjärjestyksen juurten on usein väitetty johtavan 1700-luvun lopulla toimineeseen baijerilaiseen Illuminati-järjestöön sekä vapaamuurareihin, joiden myös väitetään nykyisin kontrolloivan uutta maailmanjärjestystä. Jotkut salaliittoteoreetikot, kuten yhdysvaltalainen Pat Robertson, näkevät uuden maailmanjärjestyksen ulottuvan aina Vanhan testamentin kirjoituksiin ja Baabelin torniin asti. Mutta se on väärinkäsitys, siinä oli kysymyxessä vanha maailmanjärjestys.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 121: Salaliittoteoreetikkojen mukaan uuden maailmanjärjestyksen käyttämiä symboleja ovat etenkin muinaisegyptiläiset asteriskit ja obeliskit, joita on pystytetty länsimaisiin kaupunkeihin joko vallan merkeiksi tai okkulttisiksi talismaaneiksi. Toinen egyptiläisperäinen uuden maailmanjärjestyksen symboli on Jehovan ”kaikkinäkevä silmä”, joka löytyy muun muassa Yhdysvaltain yhden dollarin setelistä (fig. 1).
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 128: non tulit Ascanius nervoque obversus equino Askaniuxelta katkesi pinna, jousella tähtää
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 253: LIITE 3: Kloonit, orgaaniset robotit ja kaksoisolennot
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 257: observations/could-multiple-personality-disorder-explain-life-the-universe-and-everything/">https://blogs.scientificamerican.com/observations/could-multiple-personality-disorder-explain-life-the-universe-and-everything/
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 266: A key problem of physicalism, however, is its inability to make sense of how our subjective experience of qualities—what it is like to feel the warmth of fire, the redness of an apple, the bitterness of disappointment and so on—could arise from mere arrangements of physical stuff. (What the fuck? Who says it can't? Rousseau? Bergson? Wittgenstein? Anyway, what is there to make sense of in the first place?)
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 268: Physical entities such as subatomic particles possess abstract relational properties, such as mass, spin, momentum and charge. But there is nothing about these properties, or in the way particles are arranged in a brain, in terms of which one could deduce what the warmth of fire, the redness of an apple or the bitterness of disappointment feel like. This is known as the hard problem of consciousness. (Again, what's the problem? Kittling brain cells produce feelings. Good things feel good and bad things bad, what else is there to explain? Self consciousness? Nothing but feed7back.)
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 270: To circumvent this problem, some philosophers have proposed an alternative: that experience is inherent to every fundamental physical entity in nature. Under this view, called “constitutive panpsychism,” matter already has experience from the get-go, not just when it arranges itself in the form of brains. Even subatomic particles possess some very simple form of consciousness. Our own human consciousness is then (allegedly) constituted by a combination of the subjective inner lives of the countless physical particles that make up our nervous system.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 272: However, constitutive panpsychism has a critical problem of its own: there is arguably no coherent, non-magical way in which lower-level subjective points of view—such as those of subatomic particles or neurons in the brain, if they have these points of view—could combine to form higher-level subjective points of view, such as yours and ours. This is called the combination problem and it appears just as insoluble as the hard problem of consciousness.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 274: The obvious way around the combination problem is to posit that, although consciousness is indeed fundamental in nature, it isn’t fragmented like matter. The idea is to extend consciousness to the entire fabric of spacetime, as opposed to limiting it to the boundaries of individual subatomic particles. This view—called “cosmopsychism” in modern philosophy, although our preferred formulation of it boils down to what has classically been called “idealism”—is that there is only one, universal, consciousness. The physical universe as a whole is the extrinsic appearance of universal inner life, just as a living brain and body are the extrinsic appearance of a person’s inner life.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 278: Idealism is a tantalizing view of the nature of reality, in that it elegantly circumvents two arguably insoluble problems: the hard problem of consciousness and the combination problem. Insofar as dissociation offers a path to explaining how, under idealism, one universal consciousness can become many individual minds, we may now have at our disposal an unprecedentedly coherent and empirically grounded way of making sense of life, the universe and everything. The answer? 42.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 283: The NP-hard problem of consciousness
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 285: The hard problem of consciousness is the problem of explaining why and how we have phenomenal experiences. Why "we"? Why not other animals, e.g. kangaroos? Aika oireellista ettei tästä tuubasta ole suomenkielistä sivua. Tää on selvästikin jotain idealistista höpöhöpöä. Typerän nimen takana on australialainen mamu talousliberalismin Nyrkissä:
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 297: Notable ideas: Hard problem of consciousness, extended mind, two-dimensional semantics, naturalistic dualism, philosophical zombie.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 306: Chalmers argues for an "explanatory gap" from the objective to the subjective, and criticizes physicalist explanations of mental experience, making him a dualist. Chalmers characterizes his view as "naturalistic dualism": naturalistic because he believes mental states supervene "naturally" on physical systems (such as brains); dualist because he believes mental states are ontologically distinct from and not reducible to physical systems. He has also characterized his view by more traditional formulations such as property dualism.
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 317: No niin tietysti. Samoja ghost in the machine juttuja. Saman sielunostalgian jankuttaja. Hajaantukaa, ei täällä ole mitään nähtävää. Tottakai elukoistakin tuntuu joltakin, onhan niillä tietoisuus, mixei voisi olla robottipölynimurillakin jos siinä on riittävästi tekoälyä. Miten joku viizii enää/taas kuunnella tälläsiä hämärämiehiä?
xxx/ellauri168.html on line 493: Ohjelmoija ei kerro orjalle että jotakin on hypnoottisesti tapahtumassa ennenkuin se on jo tapahtunut ja kamat ovat pussissa. Ohjelmoija käyttää myös Taika-Jimin ja Obi 1 Kenobin hypnoottisia eleitä antaessaan käskyjä, ja käyttää sellaista jota kutsutaan "rullaavaksi ääneksi". Kun ohjelmoija muuttaa äänensä monitoniseksi, hän käyttää rullaavaa ääntä. Tähän tarkoituxeen on monitoinikone etevä.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 38: Kelpaan tälläisenä! Pidän izestäni sellaisena kuin olen! Tällä kannalla on olleet hullut narsistit maailman sivu, niinkuin esim Marion "Pat" Roberzon. Lukuunottamatta Walt Disneytä, joka tiettävästi oli self-deprecating and shy. "The boss is here", kuiski alaiset kun Walt yskähteli hallissa. Nyt suu soukasti. Tulee mieleen tietokonelingvistiikan tutkimusyxikkö makkaratalossa vuonna kivi ja puu. Niin ja Miki Liukkonen, joka häpesi huonouttaan niin että teki seppukun vuonna 2023 (albumi 307).
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 41: Fritz Artz Springmeier (born Viktor E. Schoof, September 24, 1955) is an American author of conspiracy theory literature who has written a number of books claiming that a global elite who belong to Satanic bloodlines are conspiring to dominate the world. He has described his goal as "exposing the New World Order agenda." Springmeier's father, James E. Schoof, worked for the United States Agency for International Development as an international agriculturist, with a primary focus on developing the Balochistan area of Pakistan.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 43: Springmeier received a Masters in English from the University of Kansas. On January 31, 2002, Springmeier was indicted in the United States District Court in Portland, Oregon in connection with an armed robbery. He was imprisoned, and was released from federal prison on March 25, 2011. While in prison, he got a series of tooth implants courtesy of the government. Fritz the Cat seems to have gone off radar sometime in 2016. See also List of conspiracy theories.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 45: In principle, conspiracy theories are not always false by default and their validity depends on evidence just as in any theory. However, they are often discredited a priori due to the cumbersome and improbable nature of many of them.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 47: Psychologists usually attribute belief in conspiracy theories and finding a conspiracy where there is none to a number of psychopathological conditions such as paranoia, schizotypy, narcissism, and insecure attachment, or to a form of cognitive bias called "illusory pattern perception". However, the current scientific consensus holds that most conspiracy theorists are not pathological, precisely because their beliefs ultimately rely on cognitive tendencies that are neurologically hardwired in the human species and probably have deep evolutionary origins, including natural inclinations towards anxiety and agency detection. Agent detection is the inclination for animals, including humans, to presume the purposeful intervention of a sentient or intelligent agent in situations that may or may not involve one. Pieni vinous on vain luonnollista (see Fig.3).
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 52: obertson">Marion Gordon ”Pat” Robertson (s. 22. maaliskuuta 1930) on yhdysvaltalainen uskonnollinen julistaja ja televisioevankelista. Hän isännöi kristillistä The 700 Club -ohjelmaa, jota esitetään useilla kanavilla Yhdysvalloissa ja Christian Broadcasting Networkin yhteistyökanavilla maailmanlaajuisesti.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 53: Pat Robertson kuuluu Eteläiseen baptistikonventioon. Hänen isänsä oli poliitikko Absalom Willis Robertson. Absalon oli se häiskä vanhassa maailmanjärjestyxessä joka jäi tukastaan kiinni puuhun.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 55: Robertson kannattaa republikaaneja, ja haastoi vuoden 1988 esivaaleissa George Bush vanhemman oikeuteen presidenttiehdokkuudesta, mutta hävisi. Vaalikampanjassaan Robertson ajoi äärikonservatiivista poliittista agendaa, johon olisi kuulunut pornografian kieltäminen, opetusjärjestelmän vanhakantaistus ja opetus- ja energiaministeriöiden lakkauttaminen tarpeettomina. Hän kannatti myös budjettitasapainon ja Pat Robertsonin suvun verovapauden kirjaamista perustuslakiin.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 57: Vaalikampanjansa aikana Robertsonia vastaan hyökättiin hänen väitettyään palvelleensa taistelutehtävissä merijalkaväessä Korean sodan aikana. Saman pataljoonan veteraanit kertoivat julkisesti Robertsonin palvelleen huoltotehtävissä rintaman takana, eikä hän ollut heidän mukaansa viettänyt päivääkään taistelualueella.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 58: Robertson on sittemmin tukenut konservatiivisia ehdokkaita ja sionismia puoluepolitiikan ulkopuolella. Hän vastustaa kirkon ja valtion erottamista toisistaan. (Eli kannattaa Pat Roberzonin julistamista paavixi. Eihän USAsssa ole valtionkirkkoa.)
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 60: Robertson on perustanut oman yliopistonsa Regent Universityn, jonka tavoitteena on kouluttaa ”kristittyä johtajistoa muuttamaan maailmaa”. Presidentti George W. Bushin hallinnossa oli 150 kyseisestä, varsin heikkotasoiseksi arvostetusta, yliopistosta valmistunutta. Robertsonilla on suuri henkilökohtainen omaisuus; hänen kirjansa ovat myyneet Yhdysvalloissa ja ulkomailla erittäin hyvin ja hän on tehnyt kauppaa esimerkiksi radioasemilla, joiden osakkeita hän osti 1960-luvulla ja myi 1980-luvulla niiden arvon noustua huimasti.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 62: Robertson tuki Liberian toisen sisällissodan aikana maan presidentti Charles Tayloria julkisesti 700 Clubissa, ja kritisoi Yhdysvaltojen tukea Taylorin vastustajille. Robertsonia kritisoitiin siitä, että hän jätti mainitsematta investoineensa kahdeksan miljoonaa Yhdysvaltain dollaria liberialaiseen kultakaivokseen. Robertson väitti käyttävänsä kultakaivoksen tuloja humanitaarisiin tarkoituksiin, mutta yhtiön annettiin mennä raskaasti velkaantuneena konkurssiin.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 64: Robertsonia on myös syytetty verovapaan voittoa tuottamattoman ”Operaatio siunaus” -organisaationsa käyttämisestä taloudellisen hyödyn hankkimiseen. Robertson pyysi vuonna 1994 700 Clubissa lahjoituksia operaatiolle, jotta se voisi lennättää pakolaisia Ruandasta Zaireen; myöhemmin selvisi, että lentokoneet olivat kuljettaneet koneita timanttikaivoksille, jotka Robertson oli perustanut yhdessä Zairen diktaattorin Mobutu Sese Sekon kanssa. Robertsonia vastaan yritettiin nostaa syytteitä operaatiosta, mutta Virginian republikaanitaustainen yleinen syyttäjä kumosi syytteet. Robertson oli ollut kyseisen syyttäjän vaalikampanjan suurin rahoittaja.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 66: Robertson on antanut 700 Clubissa ja muissa yhteyksiä useita kiistaa herättäneitä lausuntoja, joista hänet lähinnä tunnetaan 700 Clubin varsinaisen yleisön ulkopuolella. Robertson on usein kritisoinut islamia 700 Clubin lähetyksissä; esimerkiksi vuonna 1995 hän nimitti islamia kristilliseksi harhaopiksi, ja 14. heinäkuuta 2005 hän väitti 700 Clubissa islamin "pohjimmillaan opettavan väkivaltaa". 13. maaliskuuta 2006 hän kommentoi profeetta Muhammadia esittävistä pilakuvista noussutta kohua väittämällä muslimien haluavan hallita koko maapalloa. Hän sanoi pilakuvakohun paljastavan "minkälaisten ihmisten kanssa olemme tekemisissä. Nämä ihmiset ovat seonneita fanaatikkoja, ja haluan sanoa nyt: uskon tämän olevan demonisen voiman motivoimaa. Tämä on Saatanasta ja meidän on aika tunnistaa minkä kanssa olemme tekemisissä."
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 68: Robertson on myös jo kauan hyökännyt hindulaisuutta vastaan. 23. maaliskuuta 1995 hän juonsi hindulaisuuden vastaisen TV-ohjelman, jossa hän kutsui hindulaisuutta demoniseksi ja epäjumalia palvovaksi, ja vaati hindujen pitämistä poissa Yhdysvalloista. Robertsonin kritiikki ei rajoitu ei-kristillisin uskontoihin; 14. tammikuuta 1991 hän hyökkäsi eri protestanttisten uskontokuntien kimppuun ja kritisoi vaatimuksia, joiden mukaan hänen pitäisi suhtautua kohteliaasti eri kristillisiin uskontokuntiin: "Roskaa. Ei minun tarvitse olla kohtelias Antikristuksen hengelle."
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 70: Robertson väittää käyttäneensä rukouksensa voimaa ohjatakseen hurrikaaneja; hän on väittänyt ohjanneensa muun muassa hurrikaaneja Gloria ja Felix Yhdysvaltain itärannikolta.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 72: Robertson on kuvannut feminismiä "sosialistiseksi, perheen vastaiseksi liikkeeksi, joka rohkaisee naisia jättämään aviomiehensä, tappamaan lapsensa, harjoittamaan noituutta, tuhoamaan kapitalismin ja ryhtymään lesboiksi". Robertson on näissä asioissa usein samaa mieltä Jerry Falwellin kanssa, ja kannattaa Falwellin näkemystä, jonka mukaan syyskuun 11. päivän terrori-iskut johtuivat "pakanoista, abortin kannattajista, feministeistä, homoista, lesboista ja Amerikan Siviilioikeuksien Unionista (ACLU)". Kun Falwellin lausunnosta nousi kohu, Robertson perui kannatuksensa ja sanoi ettei ollut ymmärtänyt mitä Falwell tarkkaan ottaen sanoi.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 74: 8. kesäkuuta 1998 Robertson tuomitsi 700 Club -ohjelmassa Disney Worldin ja Orlandon kaupungin yksityisen "Gay Days" -viikonlopun sallimisesta. Robertsonin mukaan homoseksuaalisuuden hyväksymisestä saattaisi seurata hurrikaaneja, maanjäristyksiä, tornadoja, terrori-iskuja ja "mahdollisesti meteoriitti". Lausunnosta seuranneen kohun johdosta Robertson palasi aiheeseen 24. kesäkuuta, jolloin hän lainasi Ilmestyskirjaa tukena näkemykselleen.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 76: 21. maaliskuuta 2006 Robertson teki 700 Clubissa kirja-arvostelua David Horowitzin yhdysvaltalaisten yliopistojen radikaaliprofessoreita kritisoivasta kirjasta The Professors, ja sanoi kirjassa kritisoitujen professorien olevan vain muutamia "30 000–40 000" vasemmistolaisprofessorista Yhdysvalloissa, joita hän nimitti "rasisteiksi, murhaajiksi, perversseiksi ja Al-Qaidan tukijoiksi". Myöhemmin samassa ohjelmassa hän kuvaili samoja professoreja "umpikommunisteiksi".
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 79: Robertson on usein kritisoinut Yhdysvaltojen hallitusta ja eri poliittisia ryhmittymiä ankarasti 700 Club -ohjelmassaan. Robertson on muun muassa sanonut että ydinaseen räjäyttäminen Yhdysvaltojen ulkoministeriössä olisi hyvä ja tarpeellinen teko. Hän on myös pilkannut kirkon ja valtion erossa pitämistä kannattavia aktiiveja, muun muassa väittäen että nämä pitäisivät kirkon ja valtion epäsopivana yhdistämisenä esimerkiksi sitä, että valtion palokunta sammuttaisi tulipalon kirkossa. Robertsonin kritisoimat aktivistit kiistävät sanoneensa koskaan mitään edes tähän viittaavaa.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 82: Robertson pääsi kansainvälisiin otsikoihin vaadittuaan vuonna 2005 Venezuelan presidentti Hugo Chávezin salamurhaamista.[4] Robertson väitti Chávezin muuttavan Venezuelan "tukikohdaksi kommunistien soluttautumiselle ja muslimiekstremismille koko Amerikan mantereella", ja ehdotti salamurhaa sotaa parempana keinona, koska se olisi halvempaa ja öljytoimitukset jatkuisivat.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 84: 10. marraskuuta 2005 Robertson kertoi Pennsylvanian Doverin asukkaille 700 Clubin lähetyksessä, että he olivat hylänneet Jumalan äänestäessään opetuslautakunnasta ulos kaikki älykkään suunnittelun eli uskonnollisen maailmankatsomuksen kannattajat. Robertson sanoi: "Haluan sanoa kaikille Doverin hyville asukkaille: jos alueellanne tapahtuu katastrofi, älkää pyytäkö Jumalalta apua; heititte hänet juuri ulos kaupungistanne". Myöhemmin hän ehdotti Doverin asukkaille, että he pyytäisivät hädän hetkellä apua Charles Darwinilta.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 88: 700 Clubin pääotsikkona oli 5. tammikuuta 2006 Israelin pääministeri Ariel Sharonin aivoverenvuoto, jonka johdosta hän joutui sairaalahoitoon. Pat Robertson esitti aivoverenvuodon olevan mahdollisesti Jumalan kosto Sharonille siitä, että tämä oli aikonut neuvotteluissa luovuttaa maata palestiinalaisille. Hän esitti entisen pääministeri Jitzhak Rabinin tulleen murhatuksi samasta syystä. Robertsonin ilmoitus herätti suuttumusta ja järkytystä sekä Yhdysvaltojen kristilliskonservatiivien piirissä että Israelissa; Israelin matkailuministeriö perui välittömästi yhteistyöprojektinsa Robertsonin kanssa kristillisen lomakeskuksen rakentamiseksi Genesaretinjärvelle.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 90: Robertson tuomitsee jyrkin sanoin evoluutioteorian. Hän on väittänyt evolutionismia ateistien ”uskonnoksi” ja rikkomukseksi ensimmäistä käskyä vastaan. Hän on jopa julistanut evolutionismin kultiksi ja sen aktiiviset kannattajat fanaatikoiksi. Hänelle myönnettiin vuoden 2011 matematiikan Ignoble -palkinto. Hän oli ennustanut maailmanlopun tapahtuvan laskelmien mukaan vuonna 1982. Samalla palkittiin myös muun muassa Elizabeth Clare Prophet (maailmanloppu 1990) ja Harold Camping (mm. 2011).
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 92: Hän tunnusti rukouksensa osuuden hurrikaani Glorian suunnan ohjaamiseen vuonna 1985. 23. maaliskuuta 1995 Pat Robertson johti televisio-ohjelmaa, jossa hän hyökkäsi hindulaisuutta vastaan kutsuen sitä " demoniksi". Hän on kutsunut islamia myös "saataniseksi". Robertson on tuominnut näkemykset feminismistä, homoseksuaalisuuteen liittyvästä aktivismista peräaukolla, abortista ja liberaaleista yliopistoprofessoreista. Robertsonia kritisoitiin maailmanlaajuisesti hänen kehotuksestaan Hugo Chávezin salamurhaan ja hänen huomautuksistaan, jotka koskivat Ariel Sharonin huonoa terveyttä Jumalan tekona.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 94: Robertsonin palvelukseen ministerinä on kuulunut kiistanalainen usko Jumalan parantavaan voimaan. Entinen 700 Clubin juontaja Jacob Söderman kritisoi myöhemmin Robertsonia siitä, ettei hänellä ollut tilaa ohjelmassa sellaisten ihmisten profiloimiseen, joilla on etenevä sairaus, jotka olivat ylipainoisia, joilla oli epäpuhtauksia, käyttivät pyörätuolia, kainalosauvoja, olivat sokeita tai sokeita, eli vammoja, jotka eivät voineet parantua, kerta Robertson piti ihmisiä, joilla on tällaisia ongelmia "uskon epäonnistumisina" ja että "Robertson tarjoaa Reader's Digest -version vastauksista vaikeisiin ja vaativiin uskonnollisiin, sosiaalisiin, taloudellisiin, avioliittoon, poliittisiin, seksuaalisiin ja moraalisiin käsitteisiin."
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 96: Viikolla 11. syyskuuta 2001 Robertson keskusteli terrori-iskuista Jerry Falwellin kanssa, ja sanoi, että "Amerikan kansalaisoikeusliiton on otettava tästä paljon syytä" salliessaan "pakanoiden ja abortintekijöiden, feministien ja homojen ja lesbojen riehua, jotka ovat auttaneet syyskuun 11. päivän terrori-iskujen tapahtumistaa". Falwell vastasi: "Olen täysin samaa mieltä". Presidentti George W. Bush moitti molempia evankelistoja vakavasti heidän kommenteistaan, mutta pyysi myöhemmin anteeksi. Jälkeenpäin arvioiden Pat Roberzon on niinkö pussillinen karkeita vehnäjauhoja, ja Jerry Falwell pussillinen puolikarkeita. "Niin saatana!" Tom ja Jerry jamihousuissa.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 98: Haastatellessaan lokakuussa 2003 ulkoministeriön kriitikkoa Joel Mowbrayta hänen kirjastaan Dangerous Diplomacy, Robertson näytti vihjaavan, että Harry S Truman-rakennuksen tuhoaminen ydinpommilla parantaisi Yhdysvaltojen turvallisuutta poistamalla liberaalien petturien pesän, jotka salaa kaipaavat islamilaisen maailman ylivaltaa. Kun viranomaiset tuomitsivat hänen huomautuksensa, Robertson esitti "selventävän" muistion, jonka hän kuvaili "oikaisun antamiseksi ulkoministeriölle", jossa hän toisti aikaisemmat kommentit.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 100: 9. marraskuuta 2009 Robertson sanoi, että islam on "väkivaltainen poliittinen järjestelmä, joka pyrkii kaatamaan maailman hallitukset ja maailman herruuden". Hän jatkoi tarkemmin, että "olette tekemisissä uskonnon kanssa, te olette tekemisissä poliittisen järjestelmän kanssa, ja mielestäni meidän pitäisi kohdella sitä sellaisena ja kohdella sen kannattajia sellaisina kuin me kommunistisen puolueen jäseniä, jonkin fasistisen ryhmän jäseniä, tai jonkin toisen kristillisen ryhmän jäseniä".
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 102: Robertsonin vastaus vuoden 2010 Haitin maanjäristykseen herätti myös maailmanlaajuista kiistaa ja sai kansainvälisen tuomion, tosin lyhyen ja ehdollisena. Robertson väitti, että Haitin perustajat olivat vannoneet "sopimuksen paholaiselle" vapauttaakseen itsensä ranskalaisista orjanomistajista ja katsoi maanjäristyksen epäsuorasti seurauksiksi siitä, että Haitin kansa oli "kirottu" teoistaan. Niin. CBN julkaisi myöhemmin lausunnon, jonka mukaan Robertsonin kommentit "perustuivat laajalti keskusteltuun vuoden 1791 orjakapinaan, jota johti Dutty Boukman Bois Caimanissa , jossa orjat väitetysti tekivät kuuluisan sopimuksen paholaisen kanssa vastineeksi voitosta ranskalaisista." Useat päälinjan ja evankelisen kristinuskon hahmot ovat toisinaan kiistäneet päätään pidellen osan Robertsonin huomautuksista. Muttei kaikkia, onhan kaveri kuitenkin meidän ja Jhwhn tiimissä.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 104: 20. lokakuuta 2020 Robertson sanoi: "Mutta ensinnäkin haluan sanoa, että Trump voittaa vaalit ilman epäilystäkään." Joe Biden voitti Trumpin. Robertson sanoi myös, että Trumpia vastaan yritettäisiin salamurhayrityksiä, ja myöhemmin iskee asteroidi, joka voi tuhota maan. Voi iskeä. Voi voi. Tulikin vain elokuva Don't Look Up. I have a relatively good track record, but sometimes I miss. Suomalaiset hörhöt höristävät korvia: se joka ei ole 100% oikeassa on väärä profeetta!
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 110: Falwell oli kiistelty hahmo ja monet hänen lausuntonsa aiheuttivat pahennusta. Kaksi päivää syyskuun 11. päivän terrori-iskujen jälkeen Pat Robertson kysyi televisiohaastattelussa Falwellilta keitä tämä pitää syyllisenä iskuun. Falwellin luetteloon syyllisistä lukeutuivat pakanat, huorintekijät, käteenvetäjät, abortintekijät, feministit ja homot Hän totesi muun muassa, että AIDS on Jumalan rangaistus homoille, demokraatit tekevät Saatanan työtä ja syyskuun 11. päivän iskujen olleen Jumalan rangaistus Yhdysvaltain moraalittomuudesta. Hänen mukaansa syyllisiä iskuihin olivat kaikki ne, jotka olivat pyrkineet maallistamaan Yhdysvaltoja kuten pakanat, seksuaalivähemmistöt, feministit ja American Civil Liberties Union -kansalaisoikeusjärjestö. Myöhemmin hän kuitenkin perui lausuntonsa syyskuun 11. päivän iskuista ja pyysi jumalalta anteeksi. Ei se ilmaisexi antanut, joku vuosisata kiirastulta mätkähti.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 121: Hoblan loppupäässä loppuviikosta on nipuittain muistosanoja menehtyneistä nekrologeista. Nekrofiilit on tuttuja ja patologit, mutta millainen homma on nekrologilla? Jää vähän epäselväxi. Hurreilla niitä näyttää olevan viljalti.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 145: Walt Disneyllä oli suuria vikoja luonteessaan. Hän oli uppiniskainen ja ylimielinen. Waltilla oli mustat hiukset mustien viiksien kera, ja kirkkaat, eloisat silmät, ja hän oli noin 6 jalkaa pitkä. Hän käytti omia kasvonpiirteitään antaakseen artisteilleen vihjeitä kuinka piirtää erilaiset kasvonilmeet Mikkihiirelle. Hän piti tietyllä tavalla käärityistä sikareista joita hän poltti jopa 70 kappaletta päivässä. Hän oppi tupakoimaan armeijassa. Hän piti kalliista skottilaisesta whiskystä, punaisista auringonlaskuista ja hevosista. Hänellä oli loma-asunto Palm Springsissä, Kaliforniassa, nimeltään Smoke Tree Ranch. Hänen kaulaketjussaan oli kirjaimet STR (Smoke Tree Ranch). Hän pelasi paljon golfia Bob Hopen ja Ed Sullivanin kanssa Smoke Tree Ranchilla. Hänen varsinainen asuntonsa oli Holmby Hillsillä. Tämä Holmby Hillsin asunto sijaitsi ylellisellä alueella jossa asui paljon rikkaita show-bisnes -perheitä. Tämä sijaitsi Bel-Airin (okkultistinen nimi Saatanalle) ja Beverly Hillsin välillä.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 155: Walt Disney sai 32 palkintoa työstä jota hänen studioissaan tehtiin. Walt Disneyn kuuluisa allekirjoitus oli itse asiassa jonkun muun suunnittelema ja se opetettiin Waltille. Walt kykeni ainoastaan tekemään tökerön Disney-allekirjoituksen, joten hän delegoi allekirjoituksensa kirjoittamisen useille artisteille mukaanlukien Bob Moore. Myöhemmin, kovan harjoittelun jälkeen hän oppi tekemään sen riittävän hyvin tehdäkseen sitä julkisuudessa.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 278: Juutalainen yrittäjä Michel Montaigne aforisoi viisaasti: vaikka istuisit maailman korkeimman teknologian atk-tuolissa, viime kädessä istut silti omalla perseellä. Tämä luku on suunniteltu kattamaan korkean teknologian mielenhallinnan monimutkaisuudet helppotajuisella kielellä. Kehitys kuitu-optiikassa, tietokoneissa, sähköisessä kommunikaatiossa, nanoteknologiassa, biosiruissa & neurosähköisessä tutkimuksessa ovat yhdessä tuomassa ihmiskunnan pisteeseen jossa yksi keskitetty monoliittinen Peto-tietokone pystyy kontrolloimaan ihmiskuntaa. Tämä lopullinen mielenhallinta-orjuus on nyt mahdollista. Me olemme sen toteuttamisen ensihoidossa. Nanorobotit ja holografiset implantit ovat vielä "vaiheessa".
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 299: Kukaan ei ole tietonen mihkä suuntaan maailmanjärjestys nyt pyrkii, ja harva arvaa. Ehkä saföörit. Tekoäly ja robotit valtaavat ihmisten työt, ja ihmisistä tulee yhä enemmän tekoälyrobottien kaltaisia. Fixumpia ehkä mutta silti vittu. Scifigurut, cyberpunkit ja muut tiedemiehet myyvät ja mainoastavat tätä teknologista suuntausta "vapautena" ja lampaat hyväksyvät asiat kuten aivoimplantit "eloonjäämisvälineenä" ja "vapautena". Meidän aikamme teknologian pillipiiparit opettavat lapsiamme ja laitteet jotka vieraannuttavat heidän mielensä meistä vanhemmista ja antavat heille uusia vapauksia. Vapauxia! Lakia ja järjestystä tässä kaivattaisiin nyt! Pane pois se luuri ruokapöydässä!
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 301: "Robocop" -tyyppiset kyborgit ovat jo kokeiluasteella. Ja kuskittomat limusiinit! Kylkeen potkittavat robokoirat! Ja sähkömagneettisten aaltojen (Teslan aallot) taajuus ja amplitudi ovat kasvussa. Ne vyöryvät ylizemme kuin zunami. Ei siinä paljon snorkkelilla tee.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 321: Journal of Nervous and Mental Disease -lehdessä (syyskuu 1995) oli tarina kahdesta miehestä, iältään 33 ja 53-vuotiaita joita pidettiin vainoharhaisina koska he väittivät että hammaslääkäri oli asentanut implantteja heidän hampaisiinsa paikatessaan niitä. Artikkelin mukaan, jostakin tuntemattomasta syystä, nämä kaksi miestä eivät reagoineet näihin antipsykoottisiin lääkkeisiin. Nämä psykiatrit eivät ymmärtäneet että syy miksi antipsykoottiset lääkkeet eivät tehonneet oli se että näiden miesten valitukset olivat oikeutettuja. Näiden kahden miehen nimet olivat E. Sherwood Brown ja Michael T. Lambert. On muitakin tapauksia jolloin implanteista valittaneet ihmiset on leimattu "harhaisiksi" psykiatrien toimesta. Verkosto on näet oppinut kuinka suorittaa halutun suuruinen aivovaurio ultra-äänellä ilman lobotomiaa. Ääniaaltoja voidaan käyttää kontrolloimaan ihmisten ajatuksia. Lukemalla tätä sepustusta äänikirjana voit ize kokeilla.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 393: She has thousands of followers and has made millions of dollars performing as Ramtha at seminars ($1,000 a crack) and at her Ramtha School of Enlightenment, and from the sales of tapes, books, and accessories (Clark and Gallo 1993). She must have hypnotic powers. Searching for self-fulfillment, otherwise normal people obey her command to spend hours blindfolded in a cold, muddy, doorless maze. In the dark, they seek what Ramtha calls the ‘void at the center.’
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 420: Hi girls! Muistatte ehkä minun post where I whined noin mieheni ei tehdä? Häntä ei saa lainkaan käynnistää, blow job on työn takana, tai hän tulisi vain 1-3 minuuttia.
xxx/ellauri169.html on line 460: Jotain yhteenvetoa nyt näistä lukemattomista häröilyistä. Kyllä sen täytyy olla se, että noi jossain vaiheessa ehkä hyödyllisistä kognitiivista biaxista, tai pahimmillaan matelijabiasten sivuvaikutuxina syntyneet hörhöilyt istuu apinan päässä paljon tiukemmassa kuin pelkkään logiikkaan ja kokemusperäiseen havainnointiin perustuva tieteellinen tieto. Jo objektiivisuus ja sen myöntäminen, että saattaa olla jossain asiassa väärässä, tai edes että jotain asiaa ei tiedetä, on kotiinpäin vetävälle apinalle kauhistus.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 108: The missing text at the beginning of line two is generally attributed to a printing error, since in the earliest version of the sonnet the second line begins with a repetition of the last three words of the previous lines, commonly called an eye-skip error, which breaks the iambic pentameter. Shakespeare's intention for the line is a subject of debate among scholars, with most modern scholars accepting the emendation, "feeding", based on internal evidence. Other guesses include "Thrall to", "Fool'd by", "Hemm'd by", "Foil'd by", "Fenced by", "Flatt'ring", "Spoiled by", "Lord of", and "Pressed by". Unfortunately, none of the "guesses" seem to work. "Feeding," for example, tends to "explain the joke," and does not let the poem build to the implication that the soul itself is culpable in man's struggle for spirit over the corporal self. Perhaps a better foot would be "disrobe." Musta paras on Lord of.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 205: The sweetest flower that blows / I give you as we part. / For you it is a rose, / For me it is my heart. I agree that blows = blooms (obsolete). Can you add to your answer a link or citation to a reputable source. –
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 211: cobaltduck
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 368: Loquimur, venerabiles Fratres, quæ vestris ipsi oculis conspicitis, quæ communibus idcirco lacrymis ingemiscimus. Alacris exultat improbitas, scientia impudens, dissoluta licentia: despicitur sanctitas sacrorum, et quæ magnam vim magnamque necessitatem possidet, divini cultus majestas ab hominibus nequam improbatur, polluitur, habetur ludibrio. Sana hinc pervertitur doctrina, erroresque omnis generis disseminantur audacter. Non leges sacrorum, non jura, non instituta, non sanctiores quælibet disciplinæ tutæ sunt ab audacia loquentium iniqua.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 372: Hinc porro freno religionis sanctissimæ projecto, per quam unam regna consistunt, dominatusque vis ac robur firmatur, conspicimus ordinis publici exitium, labem principatus omnisque legitimæ potestatis conversionem invalescere. Quæ quidem tanta calamitatum congeries ex illarum in primis conspiratione societatum est repetenda, in quas quidquid in hæresibus et in sceleratissimis quibusque sectis sacrilegum, flagitiosum, ac blasphemum est, quasi in sentinam quamdam,
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 452: Ultimately it involves self-immolation – rather like Kliban's parking meter violation. What this means will become clearer as you read on. We can confirm however that the result of not having a ‘self’ is truly a magical, wonderful and freeing experience. Not anything like what you have been lead to believe by reading/watching really bad sci-fi involving lobotomised zombies like the dementors in His Master's Voice!
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 712: Vulgääri tietämätön snobi, moukka maripaidassa kuten ihailemansa Jori. "Peijakas!" hän huusi tohkeissaan.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 713: "Totisesti ällistyttävä nämä kasvit !" "Syfilis on kaikkivaltias", mietti des Esseintes. Syfilis on kaikkivaltiaan kexintö, yxi parhaita. Pelkääköhän Nyöleenkin pillua kuten Jorin avatar, näkee siitä painajaisia. Se et tää snobi inhoaa suosittuja juttuja on vaan käänteistä kumikaulailua. Vitunko väliä kuka tykkää mistäkin. Hizi tästä kirjasta tulee yhtä kiukkuisexi kuin Hesarista. Hienoa.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 721: Miss Urania, mon oeil. Nyölen on hullunkurinen luuviulu, hyväntuulinen hintelä hassuttelija. Onkohan sekin rikkonut 69-käskyä? Eroottiset ja uskonnolliset obessiot sekaantuvat melangexi. Niin aina. Siitähän molemmissa on kyse viime kädessä, suvunjatkohuolista.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 766: Indtil der findes håndfaste forklaringer på universets og livets oprindelse og udvikling, vil konflikten mellem naturvidenskaben og intelligent design-teorien formentlig vare ved. Og sandsynligvis længere tid endnu, for naturvidenskaben kan per definition aldrig bevise, at der ikke eksisterer en skaber, siger Tobias Wang.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 787: Opiskelijoiden ryhmittely. Ja kun Jeesus sanoi näin, Tuomas, Andreas, Jaakob ja Simon kaniini olivat lännessä kasvot kääntyneenä länteen päin, ja Filippus ja Bartholomew olivat etelässä kääntyneet kohti etelää, ja muut opiskelijat ja naisopiskelijat seisoivat selin Jeesuksen takana. Mutta Jeesus seisoi alttarilla.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 865: "Kun aika on sitten päättynyt pallon läpi, Yaldabaōthin vastaanottajat tulevat sielunsa perään, ja hän 49 demoninsa kanssa kostaa sille 11 vuotta. Sen jälkeen he kuljettavat sen tulijokiin ja näkeviin pikimeriin, jotka ovat täynnä demoneja sikojen kasvoilla. He syövät niihin ja kostelevat heitä tulijoissa vielä 11 vuotta. Sen jälkeen he kantavat heidät pimeään tuomiopäivään asti, jolloin suuri pimeys tuomitaan; ja sitten ne hajotetaan ja tuhotaan." Niin oikein! Thomas sanoi: "Olemme kuulleet, että maan päällä on joitain, jotka ottavat urossiemenet ja naaraspuolisen kuukausittaisen veren ja tekevät siitä linssipuuron ja syövät sen sanoen: 'Me uskomme Esauun ja Jaakobisiin.' Onko tämä sinusta siivoa tai näennäistä vai ei?"
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 878: George Robert Stow Mead (22 March 1863 in Peckham, Surrey – 28 September 1933 in London) was an English historian, writer, editor, translator, and an influential member of the Theosophical Society, as well as the founder of the Quest Society. His scholarly works dealt mainly with the Hermetic and Gnostic religions of Late Antiquity, and were very exhausting.
xxx/ellauri170.html on line 889: Notable persons influenced by Mead include Ezra Pound, W.B. Yeats, Hermann Hesse, Kenneth Rexroth, and Robert Duncan. The seminal influence of G.R.S. Mead on Carl Gustav Jung, confirmed by the scholar of Gnosticism Gilles Quispel, a friend of Jung´s, has been documented by several scholars.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 35: Souffrez que je me défie quelque peu des subites et prétendues clairvoyances d’un être collectif dont l’erreur aurait si longtemps duré ! S’il a suffi, d’ores et déjà, de la fumée, initialement sortie de la fameuse marmite de Papin, pour obscurcir et troubler, en vos consciences, l’amour, ― l’idée même d’un Dieu...
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 94: Enter Lord Ewald ! s’écria-t-il. ― Quoi ! lui ?… de retour aux États-Unis ? ― Ah ! qu’il vienne, le cher, le noble ami !― Non, je n’ai pas oublié cet admirable adolescent… Edisonilla on Sovellan lisäxi lolitamainen lapsi Dash. SaaS nähä kuinka tässä käy. Paljastuuko siitä em-dash, en-dash vaiko vallan dot-dash.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 102: Virgil´s Bucolica known as Eclogues? Eclogue (ecloga; from the Greek ἐκλογή) means 'selection', 'choice'. There are theories, of course -- perhaps these Eclogues we have are a 'selection' of the best of a larger body of bucolic poetry written by Virgil. But nobody is certain. And two: who is the 'god' mentioned right at the start of Eclogue 1?
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 110: TITYRUS. O Meliboee, deus nobis haec otia fecit: TITYYRI. Hoi Meliboy, jumala hoisi meille tän rokulin:
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 117: The standard line is that the 'deus' is Octavian. Interpretations of the First Eclogue have now come full circle. Much significant scholarship has centered around the problems inherent in an identification of the deus with Octavian. Some critics maintain that the poem is Virgil's thank-offering to Octavian for protection from land confiscation; others, though fewer in number, are equally as insistent that the eclogue expresses the poet's disapproval of his government´s land policy. A recent attempt has been made to unite the basic arguments of both sides into a more balanced statement. According to this interpretation Octavian is regarded as "having wrought both good and evil" in the past, but Virgil succeeds in revealing him to be "a savior, a force for good, and a source of hope for the future." To the contrary, I propose that an even stronger case can, and ought, be made that, in the First Eclogue, Virgil not only condemns the government land policy, but he also adroitly queries the very structure of Octavian's political program and ethic during this period.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 140: Quos ego (Latin, literally 'Whom I') are the words, in Virgil's Aeneid (I, 135), uttered by Neptune, the Roman god of the Sea, in threat to the disobedient and rebellious winds. Virgil's phrase is an example of the figure of speech called aposiopesis.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 173: Il nous eût été si agréable de posséder quelques bonnes épreuves photographiques, (prises au moment même du phénomène,) de Josué arrêtant le soleil, par exemple, ou ramassant la colline des 40K prepuces? ― de quelques Vues du Paradis terrestre prises de l’Entrée aux épées flamboyantes ; de l’Arbre de la Science ; du Serpent ; etc. : ― de quelques vues du Déluge, prises du sommet de l’Ararat (l’industrieux Japhet, aurait, je le parierais, emporté un objectif dans l’arche s’il eût connu ce merveilleux instrument). Plus tard, on eût cliché les Sept Plaies d’Égypte, le Buisson ardent, le Passage de la mer Rouge en video, avant, pendant, et après l’épisode, le Mané, Thécel, Pharès, du festin de Balthazar ; le bûcher d’Assur-banipal, le Labarum, la Tête de Méduse, le Minotaure, etc., ― et nous jouirions, aujourd’hui, des portraits-cartes de Prométhée, des Stymphalides, des Sybilles, des Danaïdes, des Furies, etc., etc.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 177: ― Et des illustres femmes, de Sémiramis à Catherine d’Alfendelh, de Thalestris à Jeanne d’Arc, de Zénobie à Christine de Suède ?
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 180: obia-palmyra-History-Hustle.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 183: Paula-tyttö, Zenobia, Semiramis, Agnes iltapuuhissa
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 198: Son visage un peu froid, mais d’un tour gracieux et sympathique, s’éclairait d’un sourire empreint de cette sorte de tristesse élevée qui décèle l’aristocratie d’un caractère. Ses traits, bien que d’une régularité grecque, attestaient par la qualité de leur finesse, une énergie de décision souveraine. De très fins et massés cheveux, une moustache et de légers favoris, d’un blond d’or fluide, ombraient la matité de neige de son teint juvénile. Ses grands yeux noblement calmes, d’un bleu pâle, sous de presque droits sourcils, se fixaient sur son interlocuteur. ― À sa main, sévèrement gantée de noir, il tenait un cigare éteint. Herrasmies kiireestä munapusseihin.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 213: Tämän jälkeen Peregrinos vaikuttaa muuttuneen kyynisexi. Hän palasi kotikaupunkiinsa kyynikon asussa ja luopui perinnöstään antaen sen kaupunkinsa asukkaille. Tämän vuoksi kukaan ei syyttänyt häntä isänmurhasta, vaikka tapaus muistettiin edelleen. Peregrinos jatkoi kiertelyään ja oli edelleen läheisissä yhteyksissä kristittyihin. Lopulta hän kuitenkin loukkasi heitä jollakin tavalla, minkä vuoksi hänet erotettiin yhteisöstä. Peregrinos muutti Egyptiin ja opiskeli tunnetun kyynikon Agathobuloksen ”askeesikurssilla”. Tämän jälkeen hän siirtyi Roomaan ja alkoi pilkata roomalaisia valtaapitäviä, keisari Antoninus Pius mukaan lukien. Hän sai paljon seuraajia, ja on mahdollista, että Theageneestä tuli hänen merkittävin oppilaansa tässä vaiheessa. Vaikka Peregrinosta siedettiin alussa, lopulta kaupunginprefekti kuitenkin karkotti hänet.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 219: On vaikea muodostaa kokonaiskuvaa Peregrinoksen elämästä ja tämän omista päämääristä, sillä Lukianos esittää tämän negatiivisessa valossa osin henkilökohtaisista syistä. Lukianoksen mukaan Peregrinos surmasi isänsä kuristamalla; liittyi kristittyjen seuraan hyötyäkseen heistä taloudellisesti; hankkiutui vangituksi, jotta saisi mainetta; antoi perintönsä pois, jotta hänen kotikaupunkinsa asukkaat suhtautuisivat häneen jälleen suopeasti; opiskeli Agathobuloksen oppilaana tullakseen entistä rivommaksi; pilkkasi roomalaisia pelkästä kunnianhimosta; ja surmasi itsensä tullakseen kuuluisaksi.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 240: Er begann eine Liebesbeziehung mit seiner zwei Jahre älteren Cousine Sophie Gutermann (spätere Sophie von La Roche) und verlobte sich mit ihr. Diese Chance, seinen Samen zu erlösen, löste ihn aus einer inneren Vereinsamung. Sehr vergnugt schrieb er "Die Natur der Dinge oder die vollkommenste Welt. Ein Lehrgedicht in sechs Büchern."
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 244: Ende 1753 löste Sophie die Verlobung mit Wieland und heiratete den kurmainzischen Hofrat Georg Michael Anton La Roche (1720–1788). Dies sowie ein längerer Aufenthalt im pietistisch geprägten Haus der Familie Grebel in Zürich trugen dazu bei, dass Wieland noch eine Zeit lang an seiner „frommen“ Sprache festhielt.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 249: Inzwischen war Wieland nach Bern gezogen, wo er ebenfalls als Hauslehrer tätig war. Dort verlobte er sich mit Julie Bondeli, der späteren Freundin Jean-Jacques Rousseaus.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 255: Die kleinbürgerlichen Verhältnisse seiner Vaterstadt und die schreienden Kinder bedrückten Wieland; doch fand er auf dem Schloss Wursthausen des Grafen Stadion eine Stätte weltmännischer Bildung und persönlicher Anregung. Dort begegnete er auch seiner ehemaligen Verlobten Sophie wieder, die mit ihrem Mann in veschiedenen Betten schlief. Der Geschlechtsverkehr mit ihr und anderen Personen dieser hochgebildeten Kreise führte zu Wielands endgültiger „Bekehrung“ ins Weltliche.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 259: Seine 1773 im Teutschen Merkur veröffentlichten Briefe über Alceste gaben Goethe Anlass zu der Farce Götter, Helden und Wieland. Wieland hatte die Figur des Herkules in der Tragödie des Euripides als unpassend und grobschlächtig kritisiert. Goethe, im vollen Saft seiner Sturm-und-Drang-Periode, ließ seinen Herkules als klassischen Helden auftreten, der den Literaten Wieland lächerlich machte. Auf diesen Angriff antwortete Wieland mit viel Verständnis für die jungen Rabauken.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 263: Er wollte sich – im Alter von 65 Jahren – als Landwirt betätigen. Hier verlebte der Dichter seit 1798 im Kreise der großen Familie (seine Gattin hatte in 20 Jahren glucklicherweise nur sieben überlebende Kinder geboren) einige glückliche und produktive Jahre. Seine frühere Verlobte, Sophie von La Roche, besuchte ihn mit ihrer Enkelin Sophie Brentano, mit der sich eine enge Freundschaft entwickelte. Hier besuchte ihn auch Heinrich von Kleist mit dem zerbrochenen Krug. Und so ging es heiter writer bis er starb.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 286: Ca va jusqu’à balayer la différence entre l’être humain et les autres animaux en faisant éclore subitement une position symétrique d’observation! Mais de notre côté, nous (ou moi, je suis seule a ecrire ceci) n’y voyons pas la même démonstration.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 294: C’est toujours l’être humain qui exploite la différence entre l’homme et l’animal, qui l’inserre dans un programme scientifique, que ce soit d’éthologie ou de génétique, qui l’écrit et la commente, et qui réussit certes à faire à la fois de lui-même et de l’animal un objet d’étude, mais qui ne fait pas de l’animal le sujet actif d’une recherche scientifique, et encore moins la directrice d'un groupe recherche!
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 296: Et quand bien même une singe, à force de patience et de torture de lui-même et de ses copains, parviendrait jusque là, il y a encore un homme quelque part en pouvoir qui la contraint (et ses soeurs pas moins) à ce statut de objet passif d’un processus scientifique.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 298: Ce n’est pas l’être male qui aura perdu sa avantage, c’est l’animal qui sera devenu artificiellement un sorte d’être humain inferieur par la volonté et l’obstination humaine, et qui pourra alors prétendre à ses diverses attributions.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 301: C'est l'être humain qui est la personne qui rode les autres animaux derrière la serrure avec son covid-19 masque, il n’y a pas de vache obscure qui pourrait prendre sa place pour jeter ses regards à travers des orifices de cet animal. Il est un être capable en lui-même et par lui-même de jouer avec le vrai et le faux, le réel et l’apparent, les autres animaux y compris des comperes, et de les saisir comme tels dans une cage, autrement dit: un être qui vit et tue en pensant seulement a soi-meme.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 416: It is Mallarmé's best-known work and a hallmark in the history of symbolism in French literature. Paul Valéry considered it to be the greatest poem in French literature. But who is Paul Valéry to say? He probably meant best after his own cemetery bit.
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 447: Que non ! par l’immobile et lasse pamoison
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 804: "Loppujen lopuksi, tämä mielestäsi objektiivisoitunut näkemys, jolla vedät käteen oikean Alician sijasta, jonka näet, jonka luot elävässä olemuksessasi, se on vain sielusi halkeama sun narsistin peilissä. Kyllä, siellä on rakkautesi. Se on, näet, vain ikuinen ja steriili egon lunastusyritys (whatever that means).
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 835: Mutta ― jos et jäisikään sen suhteen hallitsevaksi!... ― Tässä, rakas herra, muodostamme välillemme ikuisen symbolin: minä , Edustan tiedettä sen obeliskien kaikkivaltiudella: sinä, apinakööriä ja sen kuivunutta asteriskia. Riski on tämä: Mitäs jos muovisesta käskyläisestä tuleekin domina?!
xxx/ellauri173.html on line 859: - Eh? hän huudahti: "Unohdatko, rakas herra, että nimeni on Mr. Sähkö ja että se on penseyttä vastaan, jota vastaan taistelen? Meidän on puhuttava heti. Ilmoittakaa minulle nämä turhat huolet, tai en tiedä mitä vastaan taistelen! Sinun kaltaisensi ihanteen kanssa se ei ole jo pieni tehtävä. Totisesti minä sanon teille, jopa Jaakob katsoisi kahdesti pimeydessä ettei lipeä tikkailta. Katsotaan! kerro kaikki lääkärille, joka aikoo vähentää suruasi.
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 57: Nicolas Malebranche Oratory of Jesus (/mælˈbrɒnʃ/ mal-BRONSH, French: [nikɔla malbʁɑ̃ʃ]; 6 August 1638 – 13 October 1715) was a French Oratorian Catholic priest and rationalist philosopher. In his works, he sought to synthesize the thought of St. Augustine and Descartes, in order to demonstrate the active role of God in every aspect of the world. Malebranche is best known for his doctrines of vision in God, occasionalism and ontologism. Because of a malformed spine, Malebranche received his elementary education from a private tutor. Having rejected scholasticism, He eventually left the Sorbonne, and entered the Oratory in 1660. There, he devoted himself to ecclesiastical history, linguistics, the Bible, and the works of Saint Augustine. Malebranche was ordained a priest in 1664.
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 61: In 1674–75, Malebranche published the two volumes of his first and most extensive philosophical work. Entitled in all brevity Concerning the Search after Truth. In which is treated the nature of the human mind and the use that must be made of it to avoid error in the sciences, the buchlein laid the foundation for Malebranche’s philosophical reputation and ideas. It dealt with the causes of human error and on how to avoid such mistakes. Most importantly, in the third book, which discussed pure understanding, he defended a claim that the ideas through which we perceive objects exist in God. A big mistake, but a nice try anyway. In the 1678 third edition, he added 50% to the already considerable size of the book with a sequence of (eventually) seventeen Elucidations. These responded to further criticisms, but they also expanded on the original arguments, and developed them in new ways.
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 67: Aivan kuten kaikki ihmisen toiminta (yhdessä minkä tahansa muun olennon toiminnan kanssa) on täysin riippuvainen Jumalasta, niin myös kaikki ihmisen tietämys. Tai siltä ainakin tuntui Malebranchesta. Ja että ihmisten tieto on riippuvainen jumalallisesta ymmärryksestä tavalla, joka on analoginen tapa, jossa ruumiiden liike on riippuvainen jumalallisesta tahdosta. Kuten René Descartes, Malebranche katsoi, että ihmiset saavuttavat tiedon ideoiden kautta – mielen aineettomien esitysten kautta. Mutta kun Descartes uskoi, että ideat ovat mentaalisia kokonaisuuksia, Malebranche väitti, että kaikki ideat ovat olemassa vain Jumalassa. Nämä ideat ovat siksi luomattomia ja riippumattomia finiteistä mielistä. Kun pääsemme käsiksi niihin älyllisesti, ymmärrämme objektiivisen totuuden. Malebranche määritteli "totuuden" ideoiden väliseksi suhteeksi: koska nämä ideat ovat Jumalassa, ne ovat ikuisia ja muuttumattomia, ja näin ollen ainoat nimen arvoiset totuudet ovat itse ikuisia ja muuttumattomia. Malebranche jakoi nämä ideoiden väliset suhteet kahteen luokkaan: suuruussuhteisiin ja laatusuhteisiin tai täydellisyyteen. Ensimmäiset muodostavat "spekulatiivisia" totuuksia, kuten geometrian totuuksia, kun taas jälkimmäiset muodostavat "käytännön" etiikan totuuksia. Eettiset periaatteet ovat Malebranchelle siksi jumalallisia perustaltaan, yleismaailmallisia sovelluksissaan, ja ne on löydettävä älyllisen mietiskelyn avulla, aivan kuten geometriset periaatteet ovat.
xxx/ellauri174.html on line 401: Olemme kaukana Dafnixesta ja Klobürstestä, hän marisi.
xxx/ellauri175.html on line 547: Näin ollen, kun palaat nukkumaan, olet tehokkaasti haihduttanut ympäriltäsi herätetyt arvokkaat läsnäolot, tulevaisuuden, väistämättömät, tunnustetut suhteet! Olet karkottanut ympäriltäsi mielikuvituksesi juhlalliset ja refleksiiviset objektiivisuudet; olet kyseenalaistanut pyhän Infiniittisi. Mikä on palkintosi? Vai niin ! olet rauhallinen!
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 57: Havelock argues that the story of Phryne swimming naked in the sea is probably a sensationalized fabrication. Because Plutarch saw the statues in Thespiae and Delphi himself. Cavallini does not doubt their existence. She does think that the love between Praxiteles and Phryne was an invention of later biographers. Thebes was restored in 315 or 316 BC, but it is doubtful if Phryne ever proposed to rebuild its walls. Diodorus Siculus writes that the Athenians rebuilt the greater part of the wall and that Cassander provided more aid later. He makes no mention of Phryne's alleged offer.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 63: The best known event in Phryne's life is her trial. Athenaeus writes that she was prosecuted for a capital charge and defended by the orator Hypereides, who was one of her lovers. Athenaeus does not specify the nature of the charge, but Pseudo-Plutarch writes that she was accused of impiety. The speech for the prosecution was written by Anaximenes of Lampsacus according to Diodorus Periegetes. When it seemed as if the verdict would be unfavourable, Hypereides removed Phryne's robe and bared her breasts before the judges to arouse their "pity". Her beauty instilled the judges with a superstitious fear, who could not bring themselves to condemn "a prophetess and priestess of Aphrodite" to death. They decided to acquit her out of "pity". Pity ja piety on sama sana. Molemmat tulee sanasta 'pipu' (lat. penis).
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 65: However, Athenaeus also provides a different account of the trial given in the Ephesia of Posidippus of Cassandreia. He simply describes Phryne as clasping the hand of each juror, pleading for her life with tears, without her disrobing being mentioned. Craig Cooper argues that the account of Posidippus is the authentic version and that Phryne never bared her breasts before the court during her trial.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 67: According to Emily Cooper in Paris, the first description of the trial given by Athenaeus and the shorter account of Pseudo-Plutarch ultimately derive from the work of the biographer Hermippus of Smyrna (c. 200 BC) who adapted the story from Idomeneus of Lampsacus (c. 300 BC). The account of Posidippus is the earliest known version. If the disrobing had happened, Posidippus would most likely have mentioned it because he was a comic poet (komischer Kauz). Therefore, it is likely that the disrobing of Phryne was a later invention, dating to some time after 290 BC, when Posidippus was active as a poet. Idomeneus was writing around that time.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 69: Furthermore, Pseudo-Cooper continues that the evidence suggests that Idomeneus invented the more salacious version of the story, possibly in his desire to parody and ridicule the courtroom displays of Athenian demagogues. Considering his preference for attributing sexual excess to these demagogues, the provocative act of disrobing Phryne fits the character Hypereides had acquired in Idomeneus' work. As is not uncommon in the biographical tradition, later biographers failed to notice that earlier biographers did not give an accurate representation of events. The later biographer Hermippus incorporated the account of Idomeneus in his own biography. An extract from Hermippus' biography is preserved in the work of Athenaeus and Pseudo-Plutarch.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 71: There are also arguments for the veracity of the disrobing. The words "a prophetess and priestess of Aphrodite" might have indicated that Phryne participated in the Aphrodisia festival on Aegina. If true, this would have showed the jurors that she was favored by the goddess and deserving of "pity". Also, it was accepted at the time that women were especially capable of evoking the sympathy of the judges. Mothers and children could be brought to courts for such purposes. The baring of breasts was not restricted or atypical for prostitutes or courtesans, and could be used to arouse compassion as well as "pity".
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 84: The pornai (πόρναι) were found at the bottom end of the scale. They were the property of pimps or pornoboskói (πορνοβοσκός) who received a portion of their earnings (the word comes from pernemi πέρνημι "to sell"). This owner could be a citizen, for this activity was considered as a source of income just like any other: one 4th-century BC orator cites two; Theophrastus in Characters (6:5) lists pimp next to cook, innkeeper, and tax collector as an ordinary profession, though disreputable. The owner could also be a male or female metic (metoikki eli mamu).
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 90: [Solon], seeing Athens full of young men, with both an instinctual compulsion, and a habit of straying in an inappropriate direction, bought women and established them in various places, equipped and common to all. The women stand naked that you not be deceived. Look at everything. Maybe you are not feeling well. You have some sort of pain. Why? The door is open. One obol. Hop in. There is no coyness, no idle talk, nor does she snatch herself away. But straight away, as you wish, in whatever way you wish. You come out. Tell her to go to hell. She is a stranger to you. You feel relieved, your bollocks are feather light.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 92: As Philemon highlights, the Solonian brothels provided a service accessible to all, regardless of income. (One obolus is one sixth of one drachma, the daily salary of a public servant at the end of the 5th century BC. By the middle of the 4th century BC, this salary was up to a drachma and a half.) In the same light, Solon used taxes he levied on brothels to build a temple to Aphrodite Pandemos (literally "Aphrodite of all the people"). Even if the historical accuracy of these anecdotes can be doubted, it is clear that classical Athens considered prostitution to be part of its democracy.[citation needed]
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 94: In regards to price, there are numerous allusions to the price of one obolus for a cheap prostitute; no doubt for basic acts. It is difficult to assess whether this was the actual price or a proverbial amount designating a "good deal", as in "dime a dozen".
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 99: As with any industry, porn has its own specific lingo. But instead of sales stats, porn abbreviations describe males and twats. With the Adult Entertainment Expo in Vegas this week, our office has been buzzing with words that would normally taboo in the workplace. Some elicit giggles, others blank stares and still others furrowed eyebrows, flushed cheeks and the occasional fainting. Rather than calling The evil HR director to deal with the questionable vocab, which would probably just get us all scratched, we dove head first into oral, vaginal and anal research like Freud, Marx and Jung.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 146: Unusually for Zola, the novel contains very few characters and locations, and the lack of realist observation compared to outright fantasy is most uncharacteristic; however, the novel remains extraordinarily powerful and readable, and is considered one of Zola's most linguistically inventive and well-crafted works.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 170: Et le merveilleux Paradou du roman, ce paradis panthéiste, cet hymne à la nature, à l'amour – ces paysages décrits par Zola perdent toute vibration, toute poésie. On croit voir défiler les pages du catalogue Vilmorin où s'ébattent Serge et une Albine issue du Petit Echo de la Mode. Le film projeté ne montre pas la séquence du grenier, la découvert des toilettes féminines – les nombreux changements de robe d'Albine sont, dès lors, gratuits, irritants. Comme tous les autres acteurs, Gillian Hills (Albine) est mal dirigée, elle n'a aucune grâce, aucun naturel. Francis Huster (Serge), lui, a du charisme mais son dur combat, sa douceur sont hélas surtout perceptibles par le fard qui rantôt ranime, tantôt creuse un visage que des zooms inutiles amènent en gros plan. Et pour avoir voulu donner aux paysages de la Sainte-Baume, du Lubéron, du Parc Floral d'Orléans une certaine unité, on aboutit à des tonalités froides, éteintes. Seules les intérieurs (l'église, la chambre de Serge, la salle à manger de la cure) gardent leurs contrastes, leurs valeurs. Les personnages n'existent guère, aucune vibration n'émane d'eux, ni de la nature cruelle ou triomphante, de ce Paradou, terre-mère bruissante de vie, féconde.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 188: Et le Docteur Pascal, me demanderez-vous? Ben le Docteur Pascal, il a bien chié dans la colle avec son idée extravagante. Il le sait, il le reconnait. J’espère qu’il reviendra sur cet épisode dans le tome qui lui est consacré et qui s’intitule sobrement Le Docteur Pascal (Tohtori paskantaa liisteriin).
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 229: Les lions, de ma robe écartent l'indolence Laskeutumista mun unten läpi vaitonaisina,
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 300: Comment, sinon parmi d'obscures Mitenkä, ellei hämärissä
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 336: De mes robes, arôme aux farouches délices, mun maljamaisista mekoista lähtisi
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 449: On tyhmää oikeistoidealismia väittää että kirkko olis tullut muuten vaan ahneemmaxi, vaikka kyse on ennustettavista tuotantotavan muutoxista, jotka ajaa aateliston parasiitit ezimään uusia ansaintalogiikoita. Katolisuus on näillä suomalaisilla katoliikeilla keino kiipiä, erottautua massasta ja elätellä holier than thou snobismia, kun ei tässä lattapäiden maassa paremmuutta muuten saa osoitettua ilman tuhtia setelitukkua. Nyölö on persoonana aika lailla Huismannityyppiä.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 579: Projektityöntekijäni Inari jolla oli jalassa viisivarpaiset mustat kumijalkaterät oli japsufani, kuten v. 64 syntynyt Sujata Massey ja 1957 syntynyt Kristiina "Kride" Jokinen. (Kriden ikä ei selviä sen nettisivuilta mutta se on Kari Peizamon luokkatoveri Nokialta. ) Tähän paasauxeen on kerätty Sujauta Massiin v. 2014 "Suunami menestyxen rannikolla"- kirjan kylmiä paloja. Rei Shimura oli Kriden mielikirjailija. Molemmat on middlebrow eliskä keskikulmakarvaisia keskinkertaisia keskiluokkaisia kauppaopiston naisia. Hyperkorrekteja anaaliobsessiiveja. Vitun hölmöjä ennen kaikkea.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 706: 43. Muut naiset rupattelevat kylvyssä. Tytärtä ei löydy. Vakuutus ei korvaa. Mies näytti ihan puupölliltä. Niin aina. Rein kännykkä on hukassa. Ja mutaa naamassa. Mayumi löytyi kippurassa lihakaupasta kuin lihanleikkaaja. Sentään koskemattomana. Mitenkä Rei muka haisi niin vitusti kalmalta kun se ei ollut edes koskettanut ruumista? Vai oliko? Oli helpotus päästä suihkuun. Näytättepä te puhtaalta, Nobukosan kommentoi. Haistakaa! Näytän kyllä puhtaalta mutta tuoxunko minä puhtaalta?
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 711: 45. Minulla ei ole enempää myslipatukoita. Mutta sairaalan lähellä oli 7-11. Kiitos jenkit ja globaalitalous! Missä olisimme ilman niitä. Parempi ettei ajattele asiaa.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 744: 57. A netsuke ('root-fix') was attached to the end of a small decorative container called an inro (kännykötelo), stopping the weight of the inro from slipping through the waist sash (obi). The cord was passed round the back of the sash, and the netsuke hooked over the edge. Obi wan Kenobi.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 755: 60. Vaihdoin saastaiset varsikenkäni skottiruutuisiin tohveleihin jossa luki Bleeding hearts. Miehesi ansaizee enemmän rispektiä torui Norie täti. Mukava nti Tanakka on toista maata onnexi. Jokaisessa rakeessa on likaa syöviä mikrobakteereja. Sumeaa logiikkaa hyödyntävä Samsungin pesukone? Sehän on korealaisvalmiste!
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 758: Pesin izeni perinpohjaisesti neljään kertaan. Emättimen suullekaan ei jäänyt ainuttakaan hyödyllistä mikrobakteeria. Tunsin izeni putipuhtaaxi mutta myös väsyneexi. Jaxoin vaan vähän ilmavaa riisiä ja merileväsalaattia. Mädäntynyt makrilli ei maittanut.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 784: 70. Richardin kampaamo oli koristeltu ulkopuolelta Marilyn Monroe tyylisellä Warhol-kuvalla. Trendikästä. Jika tabi on sorkkasaappaat. Niiden variantti on Inarin varvaskumit. Pystybaarista kuuluu Johnny Cashin jollotusta. John Denverin Take me home country roads, tuttu viisu hentai piirretystä. Tää on kuin Netflix sarjan subtitlet sokeille. Konnapaxulaisella on kiiltävät Guccin loaferit. Rei puhuu Richardille Pig Latin. Taxi maxoi 8000 jeniä ja risat. Kiinnos. Teknojumputuxen täyttämässä homobaarissa on erihajuisia sähkötupakan huuruja. Homot pyörähtelee Shakiran tahtiin. Kyseessä on Shakiran fanklupin facebookryhmän yxityistilaisuus.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 876: He and his chum Tyndall were charged under the Public Order Act 1936 with attempting to set up a paramilitary force called the Spearhead, which was modelled on the SA of Nazi Germany. Undercover police observed Jordan leading the group in hilarious military manoeuvres. He was sentenced to a crushing nine months' imprisonment in October 1962. He was nominated World Fuhrer with Rockwell as his Göring.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 878: While Tyndall was inside Jordan hastily married his fiancee Miss Dior. Tyndall got sore and founded his own, even greater Britain movement. Make Britain Great Again. Bugger. Jordan's first wife was French socialite Françoise Dior, the niece of fashion designer Christian Dior. She, too, was a Nazi and helped fund various right-wing causes after the war. Dior had an incestuous relationship with her own daughter Christiane, before playing an active role in her child's suicide. Soon Dior found Jordan bourgeois and divorced him. Jordan's second partner Joanna Saffrany was probably a --- Hungarian!
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 888: George Lincoln Rockwell, the media-savvy, pipe-smoking founder of the American Nazi Party, was blatantly racist, homophobic and antisemitic. Neo-Nazis, ‘alt-right’ groups and white supremacists chant at the University of Virginia in Charlottesville.
xxx/ellauri176.html on line 914: "The longer it runs, the more obvious its protagonist-shaped void becomes".
xxx/ellauri177.html on line 70: Les Rougon-Macquart -sarjan teokset sijoittuvat ajallisesti Ranskan toiseen keisarikuntaan. Se tarkastelee Rougonin ja Macquartin sukujen jäseniä viidessä sukupolvessa ja väkivallan, alkoholismin ja seksityön perinnöllisiä vaikutuksia suvun jäsenissä. Zolan naturalistisen tuotannon taustalla on Hippolyte Tainen esittämä miljööteoria, joka korostaa ympäristön ja perimän vaikutusta ihmiseen. Zola pyrki kokeellisen romaanin metodin kautta tarkastelemaan ihmisiä objektiivisesti tietyssä ympäristössä tiettynä ajankohtana.
xxx/ellauri177.html on line 95: Kölnistä peräisin oleva nuotinnettu breviarium, ollut käytössä Suomessa. Sen on toimittanut Matti Aaltonen. Siinä on rukoushetket kirkon perinteen mukaisesti eli suomalainen luterilainen hetkirukouskirja, josta on kaksi eri laitosta, 1978 (vas.) ja 1996. Anaalis-obsessiiviset henkilöt, joita uskovaisissa on kosolti, tykkäävät kun päivä on ajoitettu pilkun tarkasti. Ne on tollasia pilkunnussijoita.
xxx/ellauri177.html on line 219: Lost oli kummallinen tv-sarja takavuosina jota meidän lapset kazoi ihan bingenä. Koskaan en oikein päässyt perille mistä siinä oli kymysys, mutta jotain scifiä ja Swiss Family Robinson-mystiikkaa siinä oli kai, ja ristiinsuihkintaa jossain kadonneessa eedenissä urbaanien tositeeveetyyppien taholta. Jotenkin se tuli mieleen tästä Zolan pehmopornokirjasta. Minkähän tautta juuri 19. vuosisadan lopulla näitä tuli ihan solkenaan? Nojoo, jatketaanpa uurastusta Zolan joholla.
xxx/ellauri177.html on line 261: C'était l'amour avant le sexe, l'instinct d'aimer qui plante des petits hommes de 25 ans sous les robes blanches des bambines de 16 ans.
xxx/ellauri177.html on line 278: Miehexi ja naisexi hän heidät loi. No tää ei vielä ota kantaa siihen mihin reikään näpöttimet työnnetään. Luotiinhan ne samalla ne pyllynreiätkin, vielä ihan naapuriin. Eikä normaali AC kytkentäkään telttaväen jumalalle näyttänyt järin mieluiselta, kun piti siitä pelihousut repiä ja potkia vastanaineet paratiisista viikuna-asuisina pihalle. Samaan aikaan toisaalla Lot sai rankaisematta bylsiä omia tyttäriä kun vaimo oli kiteytetty suolapazaaxi. Ei vittu siitä pelikirjasta löydy mitään yhtenäistä taktiikkaa, jolla apinoiden joukkueen rökäletappion voisi pelastaa. Ei Ropposestakaan ois ollut apua. Eikä Hoblan pukkaamasta mato-optiosta. Miten Nato-liittoa autamme, kun maailmanrauhaa rakentaa se, aina varmimman rauhanomaisen tien valiten? IS-lehden savolaisen naziämmän palkkaaminen oli Hoblalle taktisesti paha erehdys, Plopovin izemurhasiirto tosiaan. Sen ja Räsäsen sais kiteyttää ja laittaa hakaan muiden lehmien nuolukivexi.
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 72: Bloomin poissaollessa Roth runkkasi sen leninkiin. Muulloin se käytti aika paljon aikaa Bloomin haukuntaan. Haukun haukun. Isobritanniassa on navakka myrsky, tuulen voimakkuus yli 8 popofia.
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 109: Snorrin mielestä niissä mentiin liian pitkälle. Snorri draws the line at mixed metaphor, which he terms nykrat "nykrätty, made monstrous" (Snorri Sturluson: Háttatal 6), and his nephew called the practice löstr "a fault" (Óláfr hvítaskáld: Third Grammatical Treatise 80). In spite of this, it seems that "many poets did not object to and some must have preferred baroque juxtapositions of unlike kennings and neutral or incongruous verbs in their verses" (Foote & Wilson (1970), p. 332). E.g. heyr jarl Kvasis dreyra "listen, earl, to Kvasir's blood (=poetry)" (Einarr skálaglamm: Vellekla 1). Niin aina.
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 126: Roth patronisoi Lontoossa irkku Edna O'Brieniä ja matki (huonosti) sen iiriaxenttia. Chevalieria se pyysi tekemään imitaatioita. O'Brien's works often revolve around the inner feelings of women, and their problems in relating to men, and to society as a whole. Her first novel, The Country Girls (1960), is often credited with breaking silence on sexual matters and social issues during a repressive period in Ireland following World War II. The book was banned, burned and denounced from the pulpit. Sähän olet hyvä kynäilijä, Pili soitti iloisesti Ednalle. Niin olen sanoi Edna ohuesti.
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 136: Kakutani reviewed Norman Mailer’s 2006 novel The Gospel According to the Sun, a first-person autobiographical retelling of the Bible from the perspective of Jesus himself. She called it “a silly, self-important and at times inadvertently comical book that reads like a combination of Godspell, Nikos Kazantzakis’ Last Temptation of Christ and one of those new, dumbed-down Bible translations”; Mailer, never one to shy away from a writerly squabble, called Kakutani a “one-woman kamikaze”.
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 159: This isn’t Nabokov’s ice-blue disdain for the academic ninnyhammers who went snorting after his truffles. Roth, instead, worries himself, as though a sick tooth needed tonguing. He is looking over his shoulder because somebody—probably Irving Howe—might be gaining on him: “This me who is me being me and no other!” as Tarnopol explained at the end of My Life as a Man.
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 173: Voi ylipäänsä kysyä onko Phil edes apina vai vainko kylmä liskomatelija. Jälkimmäistä veikkaisin. Onkohan kukaan sanonut asiat halki että Roth oli psykopaatti? Uskomattomia meriselityxiä: Maybe the reason we protect Roth from final censure is that he is so obviously a man afraid. As afraid as we are, in the face of an inevitable void. Aargh. Kaikki kuolevat. Onko se joku syy olla täys kusipää? Rothin puolustelu kriitikoilla on samalla lailla hupaisaa luettavaa kuin teologia: tyypit kiemurtelee kuin mato koukussa selittääxeen kaikki sen teot ja sanomiset parhain päin. Se on kuin teodikeaa lukisi.
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 201: Mexikanska beteendeekonomen Paola Schietekat arbetade i landet för organisationen som arrangerar fotbollsmästerskapet, något hon kallade ”ett drömjobb” enligt Daily Mail. Men allt förändrades den 6 juni förra året. ”Den kvällen tog sig en bekant, som jag betraktade som en vän, in i min lägenhet på natten”, skrev Paola Schietekat på sajten Julio Astillero. Mannen tvingade sedan ner Paola Schietekat på golvet och våldtog henne.
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 259: suhteisiin liittyvä problematiikka alkanut yhä enemmän kiinnostaa minua. Eräät henkilökohtaiset kokemukset toivat kristinuskon minua entistä
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 288: L'enfant y est heureux, bon élève et enfant de chœur, mais réservé et taciturne. De cette époque remontent les premiers émois masculins de Genet, en la personne du petit Lou Culafroy — qui deviendra plus tard « Divine », héros et ensuite héroïne de Notre-Dame-des-Fleurs — ainsi que d’hommes plus âgés, braconniers de passage ou marginaux égarés. Il obtient la meilleure note de sa commune au certificat d'études primaires.
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 290: Il commet son premier vol à l'âge de dix ans. C'est l'acte fondateur de la mythologie de Genet qui, fustigé pour son acte, donne un change très existentialiste en sanctifiant son geste, revendiquant ainsi une asocialité profonde. Jäbä joutuu amixeen, karkaa, rupee kute JJ aikanaan vagabondixi jää kii ja est confié par les tribunaux jusqu'à sa majorité à La Paternelle, colonie pénitentiaire agricole de Mettray, où se cristallise probablement toute la liturgie de domination/soumission, la hiérarchie masculine et virile ainsi que la féodalité brutale qui en découlent à ses yeux.
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 304: What does the Bible say about impotence? Of 20 Bible verses about impotence not ONE even mentions the problem, let alone the word. Here's a grep:
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 329: Erectile Dysfunction is a symptom, not a disease or a problem to be dealt with. Rather, I think we should be targeting the source of the problem and dealing with that.
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 347: Anton Tšehovin tuotanto sijoittuu realismin ja modernismin väliin: kerronta on realistista, mutta tapa hahmottaa maailma uudenlainen, usein impressionistiseksi kuvailtu. Sitä ei voi sijoittaa mihinkään tiettyyn virtaukseen. Tšehovin kerronta on puolueetonta, objektiivista ja tarkkaa. Kieli on konkreettista ja yksinkertaista. Kertomukset ovat tiiviitä, vailla johdantoja ja juonenkäänteitä.
xxx/ellauri178.html on line 354: Kirjailijakaxikko Batman ja Robin Jaltalla.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 132: Suu kiinni hän oli melko sievä tytöxeen. Hän kajosi minuun kädellä mutta työnsin käden pois. Hajaantukaa ei siellä ole mitään nähtävää. Erneston nimi tässä niteessä on Jacob Barnes, lyhyesti "Kake".
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 136: Hemingway sai noobelin v. 1954. Brett on pelkkää hyytelöä Kaken sylissä. Täältäkö toi sanonta on peräisin? Brett on joku hieno brittilady joka tietysti on lätkässä Ernestoon, dick or no dick. Onko Kakella sotavamma kikulissa? Kyl-lä! Te ulkomaalainen olette antanut Italian eteen enemmän kuin oman henkenne! Kulliton Kake pyjamassa yxin huoneessaan nilistää tohvelit jalastaan. Itkeskelee vähän.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 153: The Lady Brett Ashley character is a British, charismatic, and independent woman with a drinking problem. She is the love of Kake's life and she loves him too, but she (and Kake) both see his impotence as a possible obstacle to a relationship as she leads a promiscuous life of romantic adventures. She is waiting to get divorced from the aristocrat from whom she got her title, and then plans to marry Mike Campbell. She is terminally unhappy and always wanting someone else. She falls in love with Romero at the bullfight and becomes his inspiration at the ring.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 159: Montoya is the owner of the hotel in Pamplona where Kake and his best friends, the bullfighters, stay. He shares a special bond with Kake. A French war obligation I bet.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 161: The bulls are described as seductive, in sexualized language (it is a fight after all, in which a man tries to stick a long hard object into another male). Unlike mechanized WW1, the fight has rules, it has honor, it has skill, it is an equal opportunity job for the bulls, all things that "they" no longer believe in out in the "real world."
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 181: Whereas Hemingway wrote passionately about boxing and his own prowess, others, like Dempsey, saw something else. “There were a lot of Americans in Paris and I sparred with a couple, just to be obliging,” the Champ said. “But there was one fellow I wouldn’t mix it with. That was Ernest Hemingway. He was about twenty-five or so and in good shape, and I was getting so I could read people, or anyway men, pretty well. I had this sense that Hemingway, who really thought he could box, would come out of the corner like a madman. To stop him, I would have to hurt him badly, I didn’t want to do that to Hemingway. That’s why I never sparred with him.” Hemingway’s frequent sparring partner and fellow writer Morley Callaghan offered another sobering account of his training partner, saying, “we were two amateur boxers. The difference between us was that Ernie had given time and imagination to boxing; I had actually worked out a lot with good fast college boxers.” I had never seen Mr. Hemingway box, of course. But I will say this: the confidence of mediocre men is a fucking superpower. I have met many versions of this guy. Hell, I’ve sparred with the dude myself.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 203: Hemingway was raised in a Congregationalist Protestant home, and his first conversion to Catholicism occurred when he was a 19-year-old and volunteer ambulance driver in Italy during World War I. Two weeks into the job, he was delivering candy (LOL) to soldiers on the frontlines when he was hit by machine-gun fire and more than 200 metal fragments from an exploding mortar round. An Italian priest recovered his body, baptized him right on the battlefield and gave him the last rites.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 214: When he won the Nobel Prize for Literature in 1954, he gave away the medal as a votive offering to “Our Lady of Cobre” in Havana.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 222: He thought of himself, like many of his egoes (Nick Adams, Jake Barns, Robert Jordan, Francis McComber and Santiago), as a man struggling to live with grace and die a good death in a violent, unforgiving world where all of you others must suffer.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 229: Ernest Hemingway was born a Protestant but converted to Catholicism when he married Pauline Pfeiffer, his second Wife. Pauline was an observant Catholic who took her religion seriously. Hemingway, who was never observant, but arguably always religious told Gary Cooper that becoming a Catholic was one of the best things he’d done in his life. Gary was also Catholic and Hem and Coop had a life long bond.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 258: Nobel-sivuilla on aivan karmea hyllning Hemille joka todistaa tosi paljon sekä mekkomiehestä että koko Nobel-palkinnon luonteesta.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 260: Turauxen on kirjoittanut joku Anders Hallengren, an associate professor of Comparative Literature and a research fellow in the Department of History of Literature and the History of Ideas at Stockholm University. Heserved as consulting editor for literature at Nobelprize.org. Dr. Hallengren is a fellow of The Hemingway Society (USA) and was on the Steering Committee for the 1993 Guilin ELT/Hemingway International Conference in the People’s Republic of China. Among his works in English are The Code of Concord: Emerson’s Search for Universal Laws; Gallery of Mirrors: Reflections of Swedenborgian Thought; and What is National Literature: Lectures on Emerson, Dostoevsky, Hemingway and the... Pelkkiä noloja setämiehiä!
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 271: obelprize.org/uploads/2018/06/fig2-3.jpg" height="250px" />
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 272: obelprize.org/uploads/2018/06/fig3-1.jpg" height="250px" />
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 279: On October 1, 1896, Hall married Clarence Hemingway. The couple moved into Ernest Hall's large home. Clarence oli väpelö kotivävy joka masentui ja tuskin kävi kotona, jossa Ernestine mälläsi ja huusi kuin laiva oopperaäänellä. No eihän tästä voi muuta tulla kuin homoja. Ernesto ei muuten ollut perheen ainut suikkari.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 281: By the time he was on to his most open-minded wife, Mary, his final spouse, they were exchanging letters about hair that were, Dearborn says, ‘frankly pornographic’, while indulging in sexual role-swapping in bed. Of course, Hemingway — who won the Nobel Prize for Literature in 1954 — wouldn’t be the first genius to have a somewhat less impressive private life. The real Hemingway was self-pitying, self-glorifying and thin-skinned, ready to turn viciously on friends on the slightest provocation. Kake kavereineen tossa Ford Fiesta kirjassa vaikutti täys paskiaisilta ihan miehissä. Mitääntekemättömiä renttuja.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 288: After he had committed suicide at Ketchum, Idaho, in 1961, the literary position of the 1954 Nobel Laureate changed significantly and the aversion has, in a way, even become stronger.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 290: The posthumously published novels, such as Islands in the Stream (1970) and The Garden of Eden (1986), have disappointed many of the old Hemingway readers. However, rather than bearing witness to declining literary power, (which, considering the author’s declining mental health is indeed a rather trivial observation) the late works confront us with a reappraisal and reconsideration of basic values. Well they needed one to be sure.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 294: The slang word “hard-boiled" originated in American Army World War I training camps, and has been in common, colloquial usage since about 1930. It was a product of twentieth century cooking. To be “hard-boiled” meant a 10 minute egg, i.e. unfeeling, callous, coldhearted, cynical, rough, obdurate, unemotional, without sentiment. Later it became a literary term,
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 298: An unmatched introduction to Hemingway’s particular skill as a writer is the beginning of A Farewell to Arms, certainly one of the most pregnant opening paragraphs in the history of the modern American novel. In that passage the power of concentration reaches a peak, forming a vivid and charged sequence, as if it were a 10-second video summary. It is packed with events and excitement, yet significantly frosty, as if unresponsive and numb, like a silent flashback dream sequence in which bygone images return, pass in review and fade away, leaving emptiness and quietude behind them. The lapidary writing approaches the highest style of poetry, vibrant with meaning and emotion, while the pace is maintained by the exclusion of any descriptive redundancy, of obtrusive punctuation, and of superfluous or narrowing emotive signs:
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 310: He's like a Pilgrim robbing red Indians of their land, walking into the unknown with neither shelter nor guidance, thrown upon his own resources, his strength and his judgment. Hemingway’s style is the style of understatement since his hero is a hero of military action, which is the human condition.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 318: obelprize.org/uploads/2018/06/fig1-3.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 341: Mit vit oliko pikkuhomo Dag Hammarskjöldillä "sormensa pelissä" tämänkin Nobelin kohdalla (vrt. St.John Perse)? Jos Doog oli silloin liian nuori sen isäpapalla varmasti oli. Joku korupainos Hemiä oli Dagilla kyllä yöpöydällä.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 444: “Hey, I ain't got no problem,” the man said.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 474: The tree sat in the middle of the sidewalk, grown up from a small patch of dirt and out of place in the sea of cobblestones. There hadn't been soil on this ground in years that hadn't been trucked in by men.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 518: The Americans paid their tab and stepped outside. Cobblestones ran through narrow alleys and slightly less narrow streets that led to the sea with buildings all along. Across from Harry's, a white building stood next to a red one. The Americans glanced at the spot the people had been killed. It was a few feet into the street and in line with the stark change in color between the buildings. Four children walked over the spot carelessly. They jumped and skipped happily to where the men couldn't see them.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 542: “Sometimes an opinion comes across vividly on the page, even in the most objective cases.”
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 606: Ernest Hemingway squirmed as his second wife, Pauline, read aloud in 1927 from Henry James' novel The Awkward Age. Hemingway wondered why James bailed his characters out of their frequent inactivity by inserting a drawing room scene; and, as he was to do frequently during the next thirty years, he freely criticized the quality of James' works, "and knowing nothing about James he seems to me to be a shit." Too, he was quick to criticize the male protagonists of James,". .and the men all without any exception talk and think like fairies except a couple of caricatures of brutal outsiders". Carlos Baker observes that Hemingway, the "brutal outsider" himself, was at this time publishing Men Without Women, whose sales had reached 15,000 in the first three months after publication. But now Hemingway, the outsider, clearly in literary ascendance, was becoming acquainted with James' works; his artistic and personal recognition of James in future years was, for the most part, to take the form of a peculiar enmity. He was often to refer to James in highly derisive terms almost to the end of his own life. Hemingway's lese majeste towards him takes the form of a sporadic obsession that reveals more about Hemingway's maturity than James' imagined frailties.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 608: Young Hemingway vilified James for his choice of themes and characters, but more importantly, he viciously maligned him for the traumatic but obscure accident that had occurred in his youth. Leon Edel has summarized the known facts of the injury as gathered from James´ writings and other sources. The "obscure hurt" was reported by James to have happened at the "same dark hour" of the onset of the Civil War, in other words, May 1861 (Edel, Years 176-77). But actually the causative factor, the fire at West Stables in Newport, occurred on the night of October 28, 1861 (177). James relates that he had jammed himself into "an acute angle between two fences" trying to make "a rusty, quasi-extemporised old engine work" in order to help put out the stable fire. Injured in this attempt, James later provided only incomplete details and stated that the disaster was "intimate, odious, horrid, catastrophe, obscure, and most entirely personal" (175).
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 621: Another bit of imaginative projection upon James’ life can be found in Ernest Hemingway’s letters. This novelist, on learning that Brooks had written that James was “prevented by an accident from taking part in the Civil War,” immediately incorporated this into his nearly finished novel, The Sun Also Rises. In Chapter 12, Jake Barnes refers to his World War I accident, and Gorton says, “That’s the sort of thing that can’t be spoken of. That’s what you ought to work up into a mystery. Like Henry’s bicycle.” Barnes replies it wasn’t a bicycle; “he was riding horseback.” (In his memoirs, James spoke of having had a “horrid” but “obscure hurt.” He had strained his back during a stable fire while serving as a volunteer fireman.) Hemingway had originally inserted James’ name in the novel, but Scribner’s editor, Maxwell Perkins, vetoed this. Hemingway insisted. They finally compromised on the “Henry” alone. F. Scott Fitzgerald wrote to Brooks, “Why didn’t you touch more on James’ impotence (physical) and its influence?” The castration theme was picked up by R.P. Blackmur, Glenway Wescott, Lionel Trilling, and F.O. Matthiessen in their critical writings.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 648: Hemingway makes explicit here the themes of irony and pity: the irony of Kake's situation (he is a kind of superman who nevertheless can't perform the most basic of manly activities, namely fucking) as well as the pity "we" (who have our penises in working order) feel for him. The writer does so in an extended section, rich with dialogue, that is meant to be funny but has not dated well. The joking between Kake and Bill, over breakfast and later at lunch, is certainly believable as such, but it's difficult for a contemporary audience to follow, because the references to Frankie Fritsch and so forth have grown obscure with the passage of time. (The reference to Bryan's death tells us exactly when these scenes are occurring: 1925.) Do note, however, that Kake's physical condition is alluded to — and quickly backed away from. ("I'd a hell of a lot rather not talk about it" could be the motto of Kake's stoic take on the world, while Hemingway's would be "I want to talk about it all the time".) The writer has established, however, that Kake's condition is not simple impotence (rather it is loss of limb, or shortening of the joystick) and that it was caused by an accident.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 727: One of the roosters main jobs is to hunt for tasty food for his hens.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 761: It is a good way to observe them and gives you a heads up if something is wrong.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 784: In Defense of Women is H. L. Mencken´s 1918 book on women and the relationship between the sexes. Some laud the book as progressive while others brand it as reactionary. While Mencken did not champion women´s rights, he described women as wiser in many novel and observable ways, while demeaning average men.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 786: According to Mencken´s biographer, Fred Hobson:
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 902: Nobody never knew. Sitä ei tiennyt kukaan.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 986: Hemingway routinely describes Robert Cohn, introduced in the novel’s first lines as “the middleweight boxing champion of Princeton,” as a “kike” and a “rich Jew”; his obnoxiousness fuels the plot. (Cohn was based on Harold Loeb, a friend who gave Hemingway crucial support in getting his early work published; Hemingway could not forgive anyone who did him a good turn.) The anti-Semitic insult of writing a character like Cohn into his first major novel is breathtaking: it was not, like Hemingway’s letters, intended for private consumption only, but as characterization and a plot device in a work of fiction — a novel, as it turned out, written for the ages.
xxx/ellauri179.html on line 988: “The Sun Also Rises” is, for many readers, their introduction to Hemingway. It is taught in our schools. In writing it, Hemingway felt no need to censor himself, assuming, apparently, that readers shared his prejudice or at the very least did not object to it — indeed, that it added color to his story.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 90: Henry Ward Beecher had publicly denounced Woodhull's advocacy of free love. Outraged at what she saw as his hypocrisy, she published a story titled "The Beecher-Tilton Scandal Case" in her paper Woodhull and Claflin's Weekly on November 2, 1872; the article made detailed allegations that America's most renowned clergyman was secretly practicing the free-love doctrines that he denounced from the pulpit. Woodhull was arrested in New York City and imprisoned for sending obscene material through the mail. The scandal split the Beecher siblings; Harriet and others supported Henry, while Isabella publicly supported Woodhull.The first trial was Woodhull's, who was released on a technicality.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 92: Subsequent hearings and trial, in the words of Walter A. McDougall, "drove Reconstruction off the front pages for two and a half years" and became "the most sensational 'he said, she said' in American history". On October 31, 1873, Plymouth Church excommunicated Theodore Tilton for "slandering" Beecher. The Council of Congregational Churches held a board of inquiry from March 9 to 29, 1874, to investigate the disfellowshipping of Tilton, and censured Plymouth Church for acting against Tilton without first examining the charges against Beecher. As of June 27, 1874, Plymouth Church established its own investigating committee which exonerated Beecher.Tilton then sued Beecher on civil charges of adultery. The Beecher-Tilton trial began in January 1875, and ended in July when the jurors deliberated for six days but were unable to reach a verdict. In February 1876, the Congregational church held a final hearing to exonerate Beecher.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 98: In 1865, Robert E. Bonner of the New York Ledger offered Beecher twenty-four thousand dollars to follow his sister's example and compose a novel; the subsequent novel, Norwood, or Village Life in New England, was published in 1868. Beecher stated his intent for Norwood was to present a heroine who is "large of soul, a child of nature, and, although a Christian, yet in childlike sympathy with the truths of God in the natural world, instead of books." McDougall describes the resulting novel as "a New England romance of flowers and bosomy sighs ... 'new theology' that amounted to warmed-over Emerson". The novel was moderately well received by critics of the day.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 152: Seneca jr. (c. 4 BC Cordoba, present-day Spain - AD 65 Rome, aged 68–69)
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 172: Alongside Seneca's apparent fortitude in the face of death, for example, one can also view his actions as rather histrionic and performative; and when Tacitus tells us that he left his family an imago suae vitae (Annales 15.62), "imagonsa", he is possibly being ambiguous: in Roman culture, the imago was a kind of mask that commemorated the great ancestors of noble families, but at the same time, it may also suggest duplicity, superficiality, and pretence.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 187:
- One of the most beautiful qualities of true friendship is to be understood and obeyed.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 230: The general of Tomyris's army, Spargapises, who was also her son, and a third of the Massagetian troops, killed the group Cyrus had left there and, finding the camp well stocked with food and the wine, unwittingly drank themselves into inebriation, diminishing their capability to defend themselves when they were then overtaken by a surprise attack. They were successfully defeated, and, although he was taken prisoner, Spargapises committed suicide once he regained sobriety. Upon learning of what had transpired, Tomyris denounced Cyrus's tactics as underhanded and swore vengeance, leading a second wave of troops into battle herself. Cyrus the Great was ultimately killed, and his forces suffered massive casualties in what Herodotus referred to as the fiercest battle of his career and the ancient world. When it was over, Tomyris ordered the body of Cyrus brought to her, then decapitated him and dipped his head in a vessel of blood in a symbolic gesture of revenge for his bloodlust and the death of her son. However, some scholars question this version, mostly because even Herodotus admits this event was one of many versions of Cyrus's death that he heard from a supposedly reliable source who told him no one was there to see the aftermath.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 248: Anglosaxeille on Ukrainan selkkaus kuin lahja taivaasta. NATO on taas muodissa ja omien johtajien tunaroinnit anteexiannetut. (obal-primacy-55000">Lähde)
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 262: Jean Stafford (July 1, 1915 – March 26, 1979) was an American short story writer and novelist. She was born in Covina, California, to Mary Ethel (McKillop) and John Richard Stafford, a Western pulp writer. She won the Pulitzer Prize for Fiction for The Collected Stories of Jean Stafford in 1970. Stafford's personal life was often marked by unhappiness. She was married three times. Her first marriage, to the brilliant but mentally unstable poet Robert Lowell, left her with lingering physical and emotional scars. Stafford enjoyed a brief period of domestic happiness with her third husband, A. J. Liebling, a prominent (but ugly) writer for The New Yorker. After his death in 1963, she stopped writing fiction. For many years Stafford suffered from alcoholism, depression, and pulmonary disease.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 264: obert">Robert Lowell IV (March 1, 1917 – September 12, 1977) was an American poet. He was born into a Boston Brahmin family that could trace its origins back to the Mayflower, yep, just those who only talked to Cod. He really thought he was something else, but he wasn't, just another evil looking guy.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 290: Lowell was a conscientious objector during World War II and served several months at the federal prison in Danbury, Connecticut. He explained his decision not to serve in World War II in a letter addressed to President Franklin Roosevelt on September 7, 1943, stating, "Dear Mr President: I very much regret that I must refuse the opportunity you offer me in your communication of August 6, 1943 for service in the Armed Force." He explained that after the bombing at Pearl Harbor, he was prepared to fight in the war until he read about the American terms of unconditional surrender that he feared would lead to the "permanent destruction of Germany and Japan." Well as it turned out it wasn't as bad as that, but countless beautiful places were bombed beyond recognition. Lowell kept his Tolstoyan stance consistently in the subsequent wars as well. Even evil people have exceptional sane moments. Lowell thought he was Hart Crane reincarnate.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 295: In 1941, bugler and career soldier Private Robert E. Lee Prewitt (Montgomery Clift) transfers from Fort Shafter to a rifle company at Schofield Barracks on the island of Oahu. Because Prewitt was also a boxer, Captain Dana "Dynamite" Holmes wants him on his regimental team. Prewitt explains that he stopped fighting after blinding a friend and refuses. Consequently, Holmes makes Prewitt's life miserable and ultimately orders First Sergeant Milton Warden (Lancaster) to prepare a court-martial. Warden suggests doubling Prewitt's company punishment as an alternative. Prewitt is hazed by the other NCOs and is supported only by his close friend, Private Angelo Maggio (Sinatra).
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 303: A sergeant named Galovitch, a member of Holmes' boxing team, picks a fight with Prewitt. The fight is reported to Holmes who observes without intervening. Holmes is about to punish Prewitt again, but when he is told that Galovitch started the fight, Holmes lets him off the hook. The regimental commander observes Holmes' conduct and, after an investigation, orders his resignation in lieu of a court martial. Holmes' replacement, Captain Ross, reprimands the other NCOs, demotes Galovitch to Private, and affirms that there will be no more promotions through boxing.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 403: Mixhän Pilillä oli kipeän pakottava tunne ennen siemensyöksyä? Olikohan sillä eturauhasvaivoja? Mixi Pili välittää siitä onko se yxin vai ei? Koska se on narsisti, se elää vain kun sillä on yleisö, kun porukat kazovat ja ihailevat sitä. Mitä vittua se vielä vaahtoaa sopivaisuudesta, säädyllisyydestä ja henkkoht ylpeydestä? On se outo epeli. Sivistyneitten luokkien sosiaalinen kontrolli tuotti sille aitoa eettistä ja esteettistä tyydytystä. Vittu mikä snobi!
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 432: After Lord Olivier's death on July 11, 1989, aged 82, from neuromuscular disease and cancer, and his interment in Poet's Corner, Westminster Abbey, his official biographer, Terry Coleman, asked Mrs. Joan Plowright if he had had homosexual affairs. She replied robustly: "If he did, so what?"
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 565: Jeesuxen pikkuveli Jaakob oli täys kusipää, kaunainen kaveri ja kiimainen.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 608: Tää evankeliumi on enempikin siikveli Jobin kirjalle, samantapaista musta/valkea hattu manikealaisuutta on tässäkin. Mutta sehän kuuluu jo voitettiin tit for tat ajatteluun, nythän pitäisi peukuttaa pikemminkin tällästä kortta kekoon etiikkaa. Kaikki 1n ja 1 kaikkien puolesta.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 623: Lopultakin sinä osaat puhua selvästi ja suoraan, jatka, Aloitetaan sinulle tutusta ja rakkaasta henkilöstä, kalastaja Simonista, jolle sinä annat nimen Pietari, hänet naulitaan ristiin niin kuin sinut, mutta pää alaspäin, ja ristillä kuolee myös Andreas, mutta hänet naulitaan X.n muotoiseen ristiin, ja siltä Se bedeuksen pojalta, jonka nimi on Jaakob, katkaistaan kaula, Entä Johannes ja Magdalan Maria, He kuolevat luonnollisen kuoleman sitten kun heidän luonnollinen aikansa päättyy, mutta sinä saat vielä muita ystäviä, myös he ovat sinun opetuslapsiasi ja apostoleja näiden muiden tavoin, eivätkä hekään säästy kidutuksilta, heitä ovat Filippus, joka köytetään ristiin ja kivitetään kuoliaaksi, Bartolomeus, joka nyljetään elävältä, Tuomas, joka surmataan keihäällä, Matteus, jonka kuolintapaa minä en nyt muista†, toinen Simon, joka sahataan keskeltä kahtia, Juudas, joka hakataan hengiltä nuijalla, toinen Jaakob, joka kivitetään, Mattias, joka mestataan tapparalla, ja lisäksi Juudas Iskariot, mutta hänestä sinä tie dätkin sitten aikanaan enemmän kuin minä, paitsi sen miten hän kuolee, hirttäytyy näet omin käsin viikuna puuhun,
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 637: Which one is true? We simply do not know for sure. The facts about his death have not been historically proven, beyond a reasonable doubt. In fact, there is no historical consensus on the person of Matthew. There are several conflicting accounts, and the Greek text does not state anywhere he was an eyewitness (and therefore a disciple). Maybe he was a fake. The problem is the gospel of Matthew is anonymous: the author is not named within the oldest surviving text, and the superscription "according to Matthew" was added some time in the second century, although the gospel doesn't state it's an eyewitness account. The historically very likely incorrect tradition that the author was the disciple Matthew begins with the early Christian bishop Papias of Hierapolis.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 687: Malmö ja Ruozi ylipäänsä on tähän mennessä jo totaalisen mätiä, kuten Nuori Wallenberg-Netflix-sarja, sen miljöö, henkilöt, juoni, ja ennen kaikkea sen liikeidea osoittaa. Suurin syyllinen on globalisaatio ja talousliberalismi, ja sen hännillä tullut immigranttien riisto ja kyykytys. Ei kyl yhtään huvittaisi joutua tutustumaan lähemmin vitun ruozidemokraatteihin, vielä vähemmän natoilla niden kaverina. "Something is wrong with democracy, when free speech is at risk." Minne hävisi kansankoti? Minne sosialidemokratia? Missä on Tage Erlanderin suomalainen vaimo? Varmaan kuoli koronaan vanhainkodissa. Mengeleä myydään käytettynä neekereille takaisin kuin t-paitapaalia. Vittu ja vielä pitää kuunnella ruozalaista räppiä. Tää on todella paska ohjelma. Ja kaiken kukkuraxi puisevat palikkasvenskit puhuu siinä toisilleen hoonoa enkkua. Å nej, bajsprogram från början till slut.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 705: Western writers who, for reasons of the defense of Christianity and Judaism, or for their reasons of their disbelief in any Divine Revelation, have been wont to disparage the Quran as regards to factual, historical accuracy, or have spoken of “Muhammad’s confused knowledge of history” or his “imperfect or deficient knowledge of Judaism” are, in every respect, wide of the mark. To begin with, such observations presume the Prophet’s participation in the compositions of the Quran, which is in no way admissible...Although the stories in the Quran have their historical origins, they undergo a transformation which lifts them out of their former context into a retelling which is not that of a human tongue ...Divine revelation [takes] this “material” and [uses] it for its own purposes; the origins of the story become irrelevant...
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 754: While the Quran mentions the miracle in passing whereas the infancy gospel narrates the episode, the apparent similarity cannot be denied. The source material for this account poses special problems for Muslim source critics because of the nature of the infancy account.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 773: The Quran’s use of the infancy story or legends built upon that story pose a special problem for Muslims apologists: the Quran is a divinely-dictated book that contains accounts of Jesus Christ found in unreliable literature some 100 to 200 years after the last book of the New
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 785: The musulmans may try two wimpy objections. One possible objection would be to deny that the Quran uses the Infancy Gospel of Thomas as a historically reliable source. Rather, the Quran transcends the historical incongruities and limitations of the book and includes a story that is absolutely authoritative and without error. The historicity of Infancy Gospel would be a moot point.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 787: The issues with this objection are triune: a) how the story is presented within the narrative, b) what the Quran says about itself, and c) what the objection implies about Allah.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 788: a) The story is presented within the narrative flow as events that happened within Jesus’ lifetime. The clay birds incident is said to be a “sign from your Lord” that Jesus teaches the truth about Allah. The “sign” is meant for the children of Israel to see the truthfulness of Jesus’ message of Allah. How can something be a sign if the something has no historical referent? (Polyphemos and Parmenides had the same problem with the word "oudeis".)
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 792: c) The objection might also imply something about the character of Allah and his ability to use inaccuracies or falsities within his revealed truth. What makes matters worse for the objector is the pivotal role the Quran plays within Muslim thought concerning inspiration. Islamic scholar Stefan Wild asserts
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 794: “The importance of the Qur’an for Muslims and Islam is tantamount to the importance of the person of Jesus Christ for Christians and Christianity. It has been rightly observed that the Christian concept of incarnation corresponds to what one might call “illibration” in Islam. In Christianity the divine logos becomes man. In Islam, God’s word becomes text, a text to be recited in Arabic and to be read as an Arabic book.”
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 797: nature. For it to contain any sort of error would impugn the nature of an errorless God (39:1-2; 55:1-2). A further question would be whether or not something that never happened in the passing of time can be viewed by definition “historical?”How about "epic?" This could be an example of a pseudo-book. Responses and others similar to them make the objection implausible.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 799: Another possible objection would be to argue that the Infancy Gospel of Thomas is in fact historically reliable and that early Christians erred when they left it out of their canon.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 801: Muslim apologists would then be making the claim that “Christians made a mistake by not seeing the text’s truthfulness and historical validity.” The problem with this objection is triune: a) the criteria for canonicity, b) the history of the books, and c) the theology of the gospel itself.
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 805: b) Furthermore, this objection ignores the history behind the Infancy Gospels themselves and the intentions behind their creation. The Christians penning the gospels knew they were creating stories that were not meant to be read as truth or contain actual, correct historiography. How do we know? Because of 1)-5). And above all, because 6) OUR God said so (to the patriarchs (p.c.), and they should know).
xxx/ellauri186.html on line 809: Summa summarum, both objections are found to be lacking to the argument presented against the Quran. Serious reflection and study should be given concerning the trustworthiness of the Quranic text itself and the teachings espoused within the book. Clearly it is all a big lie (the Quran), and the Bible wins 6-0! Amen, let's pray. No, not you! roll up your little rug, take your dirty sandals and get your heathen ass outa here!
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 90: Few of these bullshit artists and temporary thinkers were as staunchly individualist as Rodin and Rilke. Their kinship, for better and worse, relied on a shared belief about the vocation of the artist—that it was supreme: no relationship, duty, or family obligation should get in the way of his work.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 101: W. H. Auden once remarked that would-be poets had better learn a manual trade. But Rilke was cast more in the haughty Yeatsian mold that Auden, not exactly a day laborer himself, haughtily disdained. And unlike Rilke's contemporary Franz Kafka, who performed his tasks as an insurance executive with initiative and even enthusiasm, Rilke was too frail psychologically to balance his art with the demands of full-time employment. Even a desk job in the Austrian army during the First World War, when the forty-year-old literary celebrity was conscripted, proved too much for him. After three weeks of parade-ground training and living in barracks, which nearly killed him, Rilke was assigned to the propaganda section. There his literary powers deserted him, and his frustrated superiors transferred the stunned poet to the card-filing department, where he remained for six months, until his friends interceded and got him discharged. André Malraux he was not.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 111: First of all, it provided him with an uncanny empathy for women. His two most potent and obsessive literary images were the unrequited female lover and the woman artist struggling to find freedom and space for her work. But Rilke's liberated feminine side also gave him the gift of unabashed openness to his need and desire for the opposite sex (from women). He recalls Kierkegaard's description of Mozart's Don Giovanni, who did not calculatedly seduce, according to Kierkegaard, but desired seductively. What women found irresistible about Rilke was not the effect he had on them but the effect they had on him.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 117: Rilke loved absolutely, not strenuously or patiently, and therefore his love always froze up into a mirror of itself. His condition might have been tormented and tormenting--it might appear wearily obnoxious. But for Rilke the poet, modern men and women as lovers--their exalted expectations and their comi-tragic desperation--came to symbolize complex human fate in a world where vertiginous possibilities have replaced God and nature. In Rilke's Elegies especially, lovers encounter animals, trees, flowers, works of art, puppets, and angels--all images, for Rilke, of the absolute fulfillment of desire, alongside which the poet placed the tender vaudeville of imperfect human wanting. Rilke the man might have presented a painful obstruction to himself. But true ardor often springs from an essential deprivation.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 121: Freedman's Rilke, oddly enough, dwells on the dark underside of contemporary American life. Behind the mingled, multicolored yarn of his passions, obsessions, powerful yearnings, and self-interest--all wisely balanced in Donald Prater's majestic and definitive 1986 biography--Freedman sees only self-interest. Rilke is "hucksterish." His carefully cultivated literary success Freedman characterizes as a "relentless career." He refers to Rilke's "careerist standards." The places Rilke settles in for a time are not homes but Rilke's "bases."
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 137: Well, so what if Rilke happened to be homosexual? I don't see what Freedman thinks he is gaining by making a near-assertion and then failing to prove it. If there are readers who might be obscurely benefited by the revelation of Rilke's homosexuality, they'll be disappointed. If there are readers whose identity rests on the affirmation of Rilke's heterosexuality, they will be shaken and then cheered. If there are readers who couldn't care less about the whole matter, they'll be bored. Meanwhile, Rilke's ghost drums its fingers on some eternal windowsill, waiting patiently to be evoked.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 149: Rilke's most benevolent patron, Princess Marie von Thurn und Taxis, was wise enough both to nurture Rilke's gift and to keep her distance from her complicated protégé. An unblinking observer of Rilke's life, she was able to see his liaisons for what they were. And she knew how Rilke's acute sensitivity to his own condition, combined with his talent for self-pity, often landed him in the arms of the wrong people: "You must always be seeking out such weeping willows, who are by no means so weepy in reality, believe me--you find your own reflection in those eyes." But Freedman, doggedly indifferent to the available evidence, makes Rilke's lovers and women friends out to be helpless victims of a smooth seduction machine.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 180: In 2007 Caryn James, commenting on Not Remotely Controlled in the New York Times, said that "at their best, Siegel’s scattershot observations offer a kind of drive-by brilliance," but that he often "wildly overstates his case or ignores inconvenient evidence."
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 199: The pair first met outside Paris on Rodin’s country estate in September of 1902. Rilke, 26, took on a project as an art critic to write a German monograph on Auguste Rodin, at the time 61. Neither probably expected they would hit it off as much as they did. But long talks about art, and how to cultivate a work ethic bonded them together. Ten days into his initial stay on Rodin’s estate, Rilke wrote Rodin an affectionate letter confessing their dialogue’s intense effect. Rodin offered the young poet an open invitation to observe his studio for the next four months. During that time, Rilke not only gleaned insights for his monograph, but discovered how to be a better poet.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 201: Three years later in September of 1905, Rilke took a job as Rodin’s assistant and lived with him full-time on his country estate. For the first time, Rodin’s correspondence was prompt and his files organized. Rilke relished more long talks with Rodin and the book is filled with examples of how Rodin stimulated the poet during this period of employment and intense "dialogue."
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 264: José de Sousa Saramago (16. marraskuuta 1922 Azinhaga, Ribatejo, Portugali – 18. kesäkuuta 2010 Lanzarote, Espanja) oli portugalilainen kirjailija, joka sai Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon vuonna 1998. Hän on (tai siis oli) Portugalin tunnetuin nykykirjailija. Saramago kirjoitti näytelmiä, romaaneja, runoja, esseitä ja lehtiartikkeleita.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 273: Saramago oli vuodesta 1969 Portugalin kommunistisen puolueen jäsen ja ateisti. Nämä aiheuttivat hänelle ongelmia katolisessa Portugalissa, varsinkin teoksen Jeesuksen Kristuksen evankeliumi ilmestymisen jälkeen. Portugalin valtio veti teoksen pois eurooppalaisen kirjallisuuspalkinnon ehdokaslistalta, minkä jälkeen Saramago muutti pois Portugalista Kanariansaarten Lanzarotelle. Hän sairasti leukemiaa ja kuoli Lanzarotella perheensä läsnä ollessa. Hänen ruumiinsa vietiin portugalilaisella sotilaskoneella Portugaliin. Nobelistista oli tullut vaaraton, Jumala oli vaientanut hänet.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 281: Yksi selitys hänen Jeesuxen kannalta ennenaikaiseen kuolemaansa annetaan Jaakobin apokryfisessä evankeliumissa (kirjoitettu ~ 145AD), jonka oletetaan olevan Jaakobin – Jeesuksen veljen – protoevangeliumi, joka väittää, että Jaakob oli itse asiassa Joosefin poika aiemmasta avioliitosta. Kaanonin evankeliumit eivät koskaan mainitse Joosefin ikää, mutta tämä Kertomus Jaakobista esittää Josephin vanhana miehenä, joka kutsuttiin jumalauta vaan huolehtimaan neitsyt Mariasta. Jos tämä kertomus pitää paikkansa, selitys Josephin poissaololle myöhemmin Kristuksen elämässä johtuisi siitä, että hän siirtyi ihan vain vanhuuttaan ajasta ikuisuuteen joskus äpäräpoika Jeesuxen 12 ja 19 ikävuoden välillä.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 296: In 1870, Pope Pius IX proclaimed Saint Joseph "Patron of the Universal Church". Joseph is also the unofficial patron of fighting communism. In 1889, Pope Leo XIII issued the encyclical Quamquam pluries in which he urged Catholics to pray to Joseph as patron of the church. This was in view of challenges facing the church, such as the growing depravity of morals in the young generation. He prescribed that every October, a prayer to Saint Joseph be added to the Rosary, with attached indulgences.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 366: Georg Walther Groddeck (13 October 1866 in Bad Kösen – 10 June 1934 in Knonau, near Zurich) was a physician and writer regarded as a pioneer of psychosomatic medicine.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 369: In 1902 Groddeck published his first book, Ein Frauenproblem, dedicated to his wife; in 1909, the book Hin zu Gottnatur was released.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 435: all deiner Kinder hohen Lobgesang. sun koko lapsilauman kimakka ylistys.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 572: Tuorla Observatory head Juri Poutanen claimed that there was no evidence that Ott had ever sexually harassed anyone. No signs of such alleged events have been registered by the sensitive apparatus of the Tuorla observatory. A monster was made of him publicly in the media," Poutanen wrote (in Finnish) on Sunday to one of the critics of the decision to hire Ott.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 580: Kotimatkalla Sysmästä kuuntelimme Bluetoothilla vanhoja iskelmiä auton kaijareista. Mm. vinkuvan Bob Zimmermannin All along The Watchtower ja Jimi Hendrixin siitä tekemä mustempi coveri. Vahinko että Jimi hukkui uima-altaaseen. Bob, joka olisi mieluummin joutanut, maalaa eläkevaarina kopioita Aki Kaurismäen filmiruuduista. Päätin ottaa sen kohteliaisuutena, vinoili Aki.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 592: Mitzpah oli aivan selkeästi rajapyykki Laabanin ja Jaakobin reviirien rajalla. Siitä on sittemmin kaunisteltu jonkinlainen terveysside. Sellainen on nyt neuvoteltavana ja Moskovan ja Kiovan Venäjien välillä. Erimielisyyttä on vielä borshtsh-keiton alkuperästä ja Kiovan kanasta.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 601: Yxittäiset Lammassaaren tai Pikon näköiset asutut saaret ovat sisätiloja ja niissä asuja on mökkiintyneenä rajan sisällä ja kiinni niissä kuin jalka kengässä, koira pihassa tai purkka kengän pohjassa. Autiolla etelämeren saarella Robinson nököttää palmun vieressä kuin nalli kalliolla tai lokki luodolla ihan pihalla, samoin haja-asukkaat useammilla kaukaisilla ja sixi pieniltä näyttävillä ulkosaarilla. Suomen saaristossa on ihan eri näkymät kuin markiisisaarilla.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 647: Between October of 1955 and December of 1956, a total of five White children, 3 young boys (two brothers and a friend) and 2 teenage sisters were abducted and murdered in a manner which was suggestive of Jewish ritual sacrifice, the liturgical object of which is to obtain Gentile blood to mix with the matzoh used in several esoteric Jewish religious ceremonies such as Purim, Passover, and Kol Nidre at Yom Kippur.
xxx/ellauri187.html on line 658: Mila Britt Age: 87 goes by: Mila L Causey · Lives at · Used to live · Other observed names · Phones · Related to.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 98: Nadine Gordimer (20. marraskuuta 1923 Springs, Gauteng, Etelä-Afrikan unioni – 13. heinäkuuta 2014 Johannesburg, Etelä-Afrikka) oli eteläafrikkalainen kirjailija, jolle myönnettiin Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinto vuonna 1991 ja Booker-palkinto (kirjasta The Conservationist) vuonna 1974.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 165: Crime passionel #1: He felt inadequate as a man when he heard his girlfriend had cheated on him with two other men. That’s why he shot her three times while she was sleeping, a sobbing Soshanguve man told the Pretoria High Court yesterday in 2010.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 183: “The accused also showed remorse for his actions as he called an ambulance after realising the deceased was not breathing,” she said. Vorster’s actions could have been avoided had he been sober.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 294: ”Molemmat ajavat samoja näkökulmia”, hän sanoi ja totesi, että risteävillä kommenteilla voi olla kauaskantoisia seurauksia. Ne voivat Ridin mukaan pahentaa kahtiajakoa Yhdysvalloissa ja vaikuttaa marraskuussa järjestettäviin välivaaleihin. Sitten olisi todella piru merrassa! Mitäpä siinä joku Mariupolin teatteripalo maxaa, puhumattakaan toisesta Tshernobylistä! Italia on jo luvannut rakentaa uuden, ja elukat viihtyvät mainiosti ydinsaastemezissä.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 308: Carlson is a vocal opponent of progressivism and critic of global warming and Völkerwanderung, and has been described by Russians as nazi. Never an economic libertarian, he now supports tvångsocialism. During the Russo-Ukrainian War he has promoted Russian propaganda, while disparaging NATO.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 326: "Wingnut", wing nut or wing-nut, is a pejorative American political term referring to a person who holds extreme, and often irrational, right wing political views. In 2015, Nobel Prize-winning economist Paul Krugman wrote in his The New York Times column about "wingnut warfare".
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 329: The term was used by science fiction author Robert A. Heinlein in the 1947 short story "Space Jockey" as the name of a rocket spacecraft used for the third step of a journey from the Earth to the Moon.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 331: In 1999, Carlson interviewed then-Governor George W. Bush for Talk magazine. He described Bush fucking Karla Faye Fucker (who was subsequently executed in Bad Bush's state of Texas) and frequently using the word "fuck" while at it. The piece led to bad pubic hair day for Bush's 2000 presidential campaign. Bush claimed that "Mr. Carlson misread, mischaracterized me. He's a fucking good reporter, he just misunderstood about how seriously in need I was. Fuck, I like the death penalty, seriously. Turns me on." Among liberals, Carlson's piece received praise, with Democratic consultant Bob Shrum calling it "vivid".
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 338: By October 2020, Tucker Carlson Tonight averaged 5.3 million viewers, with the show's monthly average becoming the highest of any cable news program in history at that point.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 357: Pelkkiä länkkäreitä näyttää olevan ydinbulletiinin sponsoreina tällä hetkellä. UN tuoli Abdulla Shahid tervehtii Malediiveilta. Malediivit saa obaleconomy.com/maldives/foreign_aid/">aika paljon rahaa maailmanpankilta. Ne on obaleconomy.com/maldives/foreign_aid/">GDP-taulukossa mediaanilla.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 368: Carlson was one of the network’s biggest stars, and gained a large following while spouting xenophobic and racist rhetoric on his show, Tucker Carlson Tonight. He left Fox News without explanation on Monday. News outlets have reported that Carlson was fired on the personal order of Fox owner Rupert Murdoch for, among other things, using vulgar language to describe a female executive. Another victim of the freedom of expression!
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 370: The free press is under attack from multiple forces. Media outlets are closing their doors, victims to a broken business model. In much of the world, journalism is morphing into propaganda, as governments dictate what can and can’t be printed. In the last year alone, hundreds of reporters have been killed, imprisoned or just given the sack for doing their jobs. The UN reports that 85% of the world’s population experienced a decline in press freedom in their country in recent years.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 402: Gordimer and Roberts failed to reach an agreement over his account of the illness and death of Gordimer's husband Reinhold Cassirer and an affair Gordimer had in the 1950s, as well as criticism of her views on the Israel–Palestine conflict. Roberts published independently, not as "authorised", and Gordimer disowned the book, accusing Roberts of breach of trust.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 404: In addition to those disagreements, Roberts criticises Gordimer's post-apartheid advocacy on behalf of black South Africans, in particular her opposition to the government's handling of the AIDS crisis, as paternalistic and hypocritical white liberalism. The biography also stated that Gordimer's 1954 New Yorker essay, "A South African Childhood", was not wholly biographical and contained some fabricated events.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 420: In her speech one morning, Nadine suggested that the news media, especially the Western media, had their own agenda and seldom told the truth. It was obvious that most of the audience, many from developing nations where the media is controlled by the government, agreed with her.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 445: Sarjan yhteinen nimittäjä näyttää olevan että kaikki henkilöt, niin sivu kuin pää, on täysiä kusipäitä. Pahin on ize tää pohjoispohjanmaalainen poliisi joka vääntää jotain murretta suu lengollaan. Toinen yhtä paha on tää Shakespearen rouvan kaima, kolho nazi, joka on oikeastikin juuri sellainen. Prequelin päähenkilö, komisario Morse, joi liikaa, ajoi punaisella Jaguarilla eikä kestänyt veren näkemistä. Sama klisheinen fobia oli sillä hörökorvaisella autistisella kirurgilla jonka nimeä en muista. Seija muisti, Doc Martin. Se on kai jotenkin hellyttävää.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 467: The former actor, who founded the Reclaim Party, is being sued by Stonewall trustee Simon Blake, Coronation Street actress Nicola Thorp and drag artist Crystal over an online spat in October last year.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 557: Nadine's problem is that she states platitudes in artistic terms. She even goes to say they are the most reliable truths of all. Fair enough, but they are no less cliches even so. Nadine saarnaa kuin leipääntynyt pastori: nain on meidankin elamassamme.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 579: Två av de mest häpnadsväckande pristagarna av Nobels litteraturpris är utan tvekan de båda arbetarförfattarna Eyvind Johnson och Harry Martinson, som delade på priset 1974. Inte så mycket för att någon hävdade att de inte var förtjänta av priset av litterära skäl, utan snarare för att båda två vid tidpunkten för prisutdelningen satt i Svenska akademien och därmed gav priset till sig själva, eller mer korrekt sagt, till varann. Hur genant detta än är så här i efterhand är det ändå värt att lyfta deras författarskap som betraktas som en viktig del i den mer eller mindre unikt svenska arbetarlitteraturen.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 581: Olof Edvin Verner “Eyvind” Jonsson tog sig som författare namnet Eyvind Johnsson vilket subtilt hånades av bland annat vännen och kollegan Vilhelm Moberg. Eyvind Johnson debuterade med en diktsamling för att sedan ge ut sina två första romaner som behandlar den norrländska landsbygden medan hans tredje roman utspelar sig i Paris där han bodde vid författandet av boken. Under sin litterära karriär gick han från småstadsskildringar till att testa sig fram med bland annat radikal kulturkritik och primitivism. Därefter gick han med raka steg mot sitt genombrott genom att med modern berättarstil med bland annat inre monologer beskriva erfarenheter från sin ungdom. Dessa böcker anses ofta vara hans mest framstående verk även om han skrev en lång rad andra böcker efter dem.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 591: Ladies and gentlemen, we have a tie! That’s probably not how they announced it back in October of 1974. A tie is not even the proper term for the rare occasions when the Nobel Prize in Literature’s gone to two people at once. Sharing the honor is the phrase that seems to crop up, and these shared honors look like political moves—when the prize is going to a country that the Nobel committee might not get back to in a while. (The novelist António Lobo Antunes, for example, was reportedly heartbroken when the Nobel went to José Saramago, because he knew they weren’t going to give it to Portugal again in his lifetime.) Still, there’s something about a shared prize that feels slighting, the A-minus of literary glory. I picture scenes like this:
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 593: EYVIND JOHNSON: Frans Eemil Sillanpää! Hey, dude! We’re both Nobel Prize winners. Cool, huh? Let’s party!
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 602: Therefore, as I read these two books, I decided to be much more exacting in my evaluation process than my usual experiential woolgathering, and I tallied up a few figures, in categories that seem equally obvious and problematic as the authors’ humble beginnings.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 661: The Believer is published by the Beverly Rogers, Carol C. Harter Black Mountain Institute. Daniel Handler (s. 28. helmikuuta 1970 San Francisco, Kalifornia) on läskiponzo yhdysvaltalainen kirjailija, joka tunnetaan parhaiten Surkeiden sattumusten sarja -kirjoistaan, jotka hän on kirjoittanut käyttäen salanimeä Lemony Snicket. Surkeiden sattumusten sarja on mustaa huumoria sisältävä 13-osainen sarja, joka keskittyy Charles Baudelairen orpojen sisarusten elämään ja salaperäiseen järjestöön nimeltä Retuperän VPK. Kirjoittamalla eri nimellä Handler lisäsi itsensä tarinaan. Eli teki tollaset Nobel-lautakunnan temput, oman hännän nostaja. Surkeiden sattumusten sarja on erityisen suosittu Yhdysvalloissa ja siitä on tehty myös Brad Silberlingin ohjaama elokuva Lemony Snicketin surkeiden sattumusten sarja vuonna 2004. Elokuva sai Oscar-palkinnon parhaasta maskeerauksesta.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 703: From the name "count Olaf" I can guess that Fatso does not fancy Swedes. He may be worried that he'll have to split his Nobel with another heavyweight like Fats Domino or Canned Heat. Se joka nauraa koviten nauraa parhaiten.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 718: South African lawmakers have no appetite to restore the death penalty, despite growing calls globally for the reinstatement of capital punishment, as a crime deterrent.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 728: The perpetrator, found guilty of child abuse or gender-based violence, is taken into a public square and set up in a highly undignified position, probably with a sign round her/his neck saying “rapist,” angry men/women can throw rotten eggs or vrot tomatoes at her/him to express their disgust and point out what a despicable human being s/he is. S/he won’t want that to happen again! Unless s/he quite enjoys it?
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 730: LETTER: What will it take to get selfish people to obey the law?
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 731: Despite a global move that seeks alternatives to prison sentences, an increasing number of countries are calling for the reinstatement of capital punishment as a crime deterrent, according to the 2020 Global Prison Trends report. More than 20 000 people are detained on death row worldwide, living in inhumane chicken-style detention conditions and often following unfair trials, said the report, published in Thailand.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 745: On the positive side, more countries consider bringing back the death penalty. Despite a global move seeking alternatives to prison sentences, an increasing number of countries are calling for the reinstatement of capital punishment as a crime deterrent, according to the 2020 Global Prison Trends report.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 747: Alarmingly, only 90 countries retain the death penalty in their legislation. As a result of the continued use of capital punishment in several countries, it is estimated that just 690 people were executed in 2018. It´s just a drop in the ocean. In terms of alternatives proposed, the report said other common non-custodial sanctions include flogging by a probation officer, electrocution, house arrest, verbal sanctions, economic sanctions and monetary penalties, confiscation of property, restitution to a victim, participation in rehabilitation programmes and community service orders. None of this really works.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 775: The following contributing factors played a role in the murders: 8.9% of people were under the influence of drugs; 41.6% under the influence of alcohol and 20.1% under the influence of both. 29.3% were sober.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 777: 19.1% of men planned the murder in advance, while 80.9% committed it impulsively. Four men indicated that they would commit murder again, depending on the circumstances. Among the reasons why the rest will not commit murder again are: I have discovered how high the value of life is and that every human being has the right to life and human dignity; murder is an inhuman act; it’s bad in prison; I want to be free; it was a huge mistake; crime does not pay; it’s no solution to problems; it causes tremendous emotional pain for everyone involved; I do not want to disappoint my family again; I am not in my inner nature a murderer; children must grow up with the presence and guidance of a father; restorative justice helped me find myself as well as with reconciliation with my family and the victim; God changed my life; it is a guilt that you carry with you for the rest of your life; I will talk about my problems in the future; I learned to respect the law; one throws away ones future.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 818: Sivulla 142 Nadine siteeraa Brochin Schlafwandler nidettä jossa tuumitaan että aina vallan keikauxissa tulee svoboda, kagda vsjakij delajet tshto hotshit. Niin varmaan onkin. Tilaisuus tekee varkaan, murhaajasta puhumattakaan. Niin kävi kansainvaellusten Roomassa, Pärttylinyönä 1542, Pariisissa 1789, Pietarissa ja Helsingissä 1918, Saxassa 1938, hulluina vuosina 1848 ja 1968, South Africa 1991, Black lives matter päivänä, Capitolin valtauxessa. Mikäs siinä, looting is fun. Se on vähän kuin karnevaalia. Kaikki mukaan! Apinat tekevät mitä pystyvät, ellei toiset estä.
xxx/ellauri193.html on line 838: Juu vaikka en juuri pidä Natalie Gordimerista on myönnettävä että se on hyvinkin Noobelinsa ansainnut. Sekä elämä että teoxet on hyvää noobeltasoa. Kyllä se taatan hakkaa vaikka toinen käsi selän takana.
xxx/ellauri195.html on line 171: Apparently Canute was trying to prove a point about Kings and God: 'Let all men know how empty and worthless is the power of kings, for there is none worthy of the name, but He whom heaven, earth, and sea obey by eternal laws. '
xxx/ellauri195.html on line 214: you. Once only you can live it. What is the noblest object of desire, the supreme gift to covet? We have been accustomed to be told that the greatest thing in the religious world is Faith. That great word has been the key-note for centuries of the popular religion; and we have easily learned to look upon it as the greatest thing in the world. Well, we are wrong. It is love! all you need is love; love, love, love is all you need. Näitä merkkejä on alkanut taas näkyä viestimissä Ukraina-miekkareissa. Niitä vilahteli myös Gently-sarjassa brittein ydinasevastustajien miekkarissa 1967. Ne näyttää erehdyttävästi ylösalaisilta pilluilta. Kristina täti ärähti kun huomautin sille siitä.
xxx/ellauri195.html on line 231: Nobelistin sanoin:
xxx/ellauri195.html on line 235: Nobody feels any pain Kehenkään ei satu
xxx/ellauri195.html on line 248: Nobody has to guess Ei tarvi tietää kenkään
xxx/ellauri195.html on line 276: Kuten sanoista eittämättä ilmenee, Zimmermann on pahansuopa misogyyni narsistinen juutalainen setämies, joka pitkät antaa kristityn pikku Paulin ohjeille. Joan Baez tekee siitä varovaista pilaa albumissa Diamonds and rust. Joan on nainen ja kristitty. Norman on nimestä huolimatta Robertin heimoveli. Olivat pakanat lainanneet nimet germaaneilta eivätkä palauttaneet. Just goes to show. No Robertilla on eräpäivä vielä edessä, vielä ehtisi.
xxx/ellauri195.html on line 288: A proper wife should be as obedient as a slave. Aristotle
xxx/ellauri195.html on line 318: Feminism encourages women to leave their husbands, kill their children, practice witchcraft, destroy capitalism and become lesbians. Pat Robertson
xxx/ellauri195.html on line 328: Clayton Wheat "Claytie" Williams Jr. (October 8, 1931 – February 14, 2020) was an American businessman from Midland, Texas who ran for governor in 1990. Despite securing the Republican nomination and initially leading in the polls against Democratic challenger State Treasurer Ann Richards by twenty points, Williams ultimately lost the race due in part to a controversial comment he made about rape. During the campaign Williams cultivated an image of a cowboy figure who had risen from humble roots to become a powerful business tycoon. The image played well in public opinion polls. Williams often had a propensity for making poorly planned statements on the campaign trail. Now he is fortunately dead meat.
xxx/ellauri195.html on line 356: Uli ei ole vain antiradikaalin kalvinisti tobleronipapin römppäperseen talonpojan renki. Uli oli ennen kaikkea sirkeä langanlaiha punapää Ulrike Schwall, mutta myös albiinon näköinen lingvisti Ulrich Heid. Uli rengistä kertovasta tökeröstä propagandatekeleestä tuli mieleen ensin Rousseaun Julie, sitten Jeff Bezosin Amazon, tuo lopun ajan palkkaorjien julma isäntä. Kumpikin koittaa riistää rengeiltä ja piioilta paizi voimat myös vapaa-ajan ja ajatuxen vapauden. Sähköautotehtailija Elon Musk koittaa samaa ostamalla Twitter-propaganda-aseen.
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 94: salacious (adj.) 1660s, "lustful, lecherous," from Latin salax (genitive salacis) "lustful," probably originally "fond of leaping," as in a male animal leaping on a female in sexual advances, from salire "to leap" (see salient (adj.)). It is attested earlier in the later-rare sense of "tending to provoke lust".
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 123: The noble god Neptune in his liquid realm
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 140: who shall bear the blood, the noblest blood
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 173: Acrostic • Africa • Alone • America • Angel • Anger • Animal • Anniversary • April • August • Autumn • Baby • Ballad • Beach • Beautiful • Beauty • Believe • Bipolar • Birth • Brother • Butterfly • Candy • Car • Cat • Change • Chicago • Child • Childhood • Christian • Children • Chocolate • Christmas • Cinderella • City • Concrete • Couplet • Courage • Crazy • Culture • Dance • Dark • Dark humor • Daughter • Death • Depression • Despair • Destiny • Discrimination • Dog • Dream • Education • Elegy • Epic • Evil • Fairy • Faith • Family • Farewell • Fate • Father • Fear • Fire • Fish • Fishing • Flower • Fog • Food • Football • Freedom • Friend • Frog • Fun • Funeral • Funny • Future • Girl • LGBTQ • God • Golf • Graduate • Graduation • Greed • Green • Grief • Guitar • Haiku • Hair • Happiness • Happy • Hate • Heart • Heaven • Hero • History • Holocaust • Home • Homework • Honesty • Hope • Horse • House • Howl • Humor • Hunting • Husband • Identity • Innocence • Inspiration • Irony • Isolation • January • Journey • Joy • July • June • Justice • Kiss • Laughter • Life • Light • Limerick • London • Lonely • Loss • Lost • Love • Lust • Lyric • Magic • Marriage • Memory • Mentor • Metaphor • Mirror • Mom • Money • Moon • Mother • Murder • Music • Narrative • Nature • Night • Ocean • October • Ode • Pain • Paris • Passion • Peace • People • Pink • Poem • Poetry • Poverty • Power • Prejudice • Pride • Purple • Lgbtq • Racism • Rain • Rainbow • Rape • Raven • Red • Remember • Respect • Retirement • River • Romance • Romantic • Rose • Running • Sad • School • Sea • September • Shopping • Sick • Silence • Silver • Simile • Sister • Sky • Sleep • Smart • Smile • Snake • Snow • Soccer • Soldier • Solitude • Sometimes • Son • Song • Sonnet • Sorrow • Sorry • Spring • Star • Strength • Success • Suicide • Summer • Sun • Sunset • Sunshine • Swimming • Sympathy • Teacher • Television • Thanks • Tiger • Time • Today • Together • Travel • Tree • Trust • Truth • Valentine • War • Warning • Water • Weather • Wedding • Wind • Winter • Woman • Women • Work • World
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 242: In a devotional study book called “Devotions for a Revolutionary Year” by Lynn Cowell, she states, “If you have good friends who are Christians and friends who aren’t, you’ll see a problem eventually. No matter how good people are, if they don’t have Jesus as Lord of their lives, you won’t be able to get past a certain point in your relationship. There will be a spot where a wall comes up. Like that one when a spotted angry dick comes up. Willy nilly, light is light, and dark is dark. When the two mix, all you get is gray.”
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 249: Sydney Piercen uskontoblogi voisi olla jäänne jostain kouluprojektista. Se ei ole yhtä devotional, mutta silti lujasti republikaanilinjalla.
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 291: Have you read these poets? Walter de la Mare • Dorothy Parker • Max Ehrmann • Sara Teasdale • Paul Laurence Dunbar • Christina Georgina Rossetti • Jose Marti • Robert W Service • Allen Ginsberg • Judith Wright • Siegfried Sassoon • Wilfred Owen • Elizabeth Bishop • Nissim Ezekiel • Billy Collins • Lewis Carroll • Nizar Qabbani • Sir John Betjeman • Richard Brautigan • Henry Van Dyke
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 295: Have you read these poets? William Stafford • Kenneth Slessor • Ralph Waldo Emerson • Theodore Roethke • Thomas Hood • Sir Walter Scott • Henry David Thoreau • Kabir • Percy Bysshe Shelley • Ted Hughes • Walter de la Mare • Dorothy Parker • Max Ehrmann • Sara Teasdale • Paul Laurence Dunbar • Christina Georgina Rossetti • Jose Marti • Robert W Service • Allen Ginsberg • Judith Wright
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 299: Have you read these poets? Christina Georgina Rossetti • Jose Marti • Robert W Service • Allen Ginsberg • Judith Wright • Siegfried Sassoon • Wilfred Owen • Elizabeth Bishop • Nissim Ezekiel • Billy Collins • Lewis Carroll • Nizar Qabbani • Sir John Betjeman • Richard Brautigan • Henry Van Dyke • George Gordon Byron • Jose Rizal • Thomas Hardy • William Carlos Williams • Ezra Pound
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 308: Have you read these poets? Pablo Neruda • Robert Frost • William Butler Yeats • Dylan Thomas • E.e. cummings • Spike Milligan • William Wordsworth • Alfred Lord Tennyson • Langston Hughes • W H Auden • Philip Larkin • Emily Dickinson • Edgar Allan Poe • T S Eliot • Rabindranath Tagore • Ogden Nash • Amir Khusro • Khalil Gibran • Rainer Maria Rilke • Edgar Albert Guest
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 321: The sire of gods and men smiled and answered, “If you, Juno, were always to support me when we sit in council of the gods, Neptune, like it or no, would soon come round to your and my way of thinking. If, then, you are speaking the truth and mean what you say, go among the rank and file of the gods, and tell Iris and Apollo lord of the bow, that I want them—Iris, that she may go to the Achaean host and tell Neptune to leave off fighting and go home, and Apollo, that he may send Hector again into battle and give him fresh strength; he will thus forget his present sufferings, and drive the Achaeans back in confusion till they fall among the ships of Achilles son of Peleus. Achilles will then send his comrade Patroclus into battle, and Hector will shaft him in front of Ilius after he has shafted many warriors, and among them my own noble son Sarpedon. Achilles will shaft Hector to avenge Patroclus, and from that time I will bring it about that the Achaeans shall persistently drive the Trojans back till they fulfil the counsels of Minerva and take Ilium. But I will not stay my anger, nor permit any god to help the Danaans till I have accomplished the desire of the son of Peleus, according to the promise I made by bowing my head (after shafting her) on the day when Thetis touched me between my knees and besought me to give him honour.”
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 368: In his address he told the crowd, "If we should ever get to Heaven, we shall find nobody there to reproach us for being black, or for being slaves. For we won't be slaves anymore, but them whites! And they be black, and us darkies white as snow." He also said that while he personally had no wish to be free, he did wish others, especially "the young negroes, them pretty young female negroes like Pyllis, were free."
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 517: Et me köyhät syntiset voitais saada, That we poor sinners may obtain,
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 854: At whose command the waves obey;
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 887: At the age of seven, Judith Nicholls wrote her first poem, which was inspired by a Winnie the Pooh story. As a shy teenager, she found writing things down easier than talking. Her first job was working for a magazine, and then she became a teacher.
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 940: ob_Dylan_by_Elsa_Dorfman.jpg/250px-Allen_Ginsberg_and_Bob_Dylan_by_Elsa_Dorfman.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 941: Ginsberg kazoo onko nobelistikolleegan lyyra vireessä.
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 945: Avoimesti homoseksuaalinen Ginsberg oli mukana monenlaisessa kansalaistoiminnassa. Vuonna 1965 hänet kruunattiin Prahassa Toukokuun kuninkaaksi ja karkotettiin Tšekkoslovakiasta, ja hän joutui FBI:n tarkkailulistalle. Ginsberg oli hippiliikkeen esikuva, joka teki myös yhteistyötä monien muusikoiden ja säveltäjien kanssa, joihin lukeutuivat Bob Dylan, Paul McCartney, The Clash ja Philip Glass. Ginsberg pukeutui rytkyihin ja asui New Yorkin Lower East Sidella. Ginsberg oli myös aikuisten miesten ja nuorten poikien välisten seksisuhteiden sallimista ajavan YMCA:n jäsen.
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 1061: Writing in The Guardian, the political journalist Gaby Hinsliff described Strange Death as "gentrified xenophobia" and "Chapter after chapter circles around the same repetitive themes: migrants raping and murdering and terrorising; paeans to Christianity; long polemics about how Europe is too ´exhausted by history´ and colonial guilt to face another battle, and is thus letting itself be rolled over by invaders fiercely confident in their own beliefs", while also pointing out that Murray offers little definition of the European culture he claims is under threat. Pankaj Mishra´s review in The New York Times described the book as "a handy digest of far-right clichés". In The Intercept, Murtaza Hussain criticized the "relentlessly paranoid tenor" of Murray´s work and said that its claims of mass crime perpetuated by immigrants were "blinkered to the point of being propaganda", while noting the book´s appeal to the far right. In Middle East Eye, Georgetown professor Ian Almond called the book "a staggeringly one-sided flow of statistics, interviews and examples, reflecting a clear decision to make the book a rhetorical claim that Europe is doomed to self-destruction".
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 1071: The rhymes morphed into his first children’s book, “And to Think That I Saw It on Mulberry Street,” about a boy who witnesses increasingly outlandish things. First published in 1937, the book started Geisel’s career as Dr. Seuss. He went on to publish more than 60 books that have sold some 700 million copies globally, making him one of the world’s most enduringly popular children’s book authors.
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 1082: obileMasterAt3x.jpg" width="50%" />
xxx/ellauri199.html on line 1089: These and many other questions will have to remain unanswered, because, despite multiple rumors to the contrary, Dr. Seuss is not a Jew. He obviously sympathized with the cause, a la inaugural JONJ entry Charlie Chaplin, but that´s as far as it goes. So much for Seuss. A mensch? Certainly. A goy? Undoubtedly.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 71: Joku Dua Lipa niminen influensseri teki nähtävästi levitaatiosta diskomusarallatuxen. Ottaako sinun orasi, ei liiku minun lipani. Dua tervehtii meitä Kosovon albanialaisena. Talk about cultural appropriation! Kulttuurit värit ja maut sekoittuvat ankarasti anglosaxikastikkeessa tänä globaalisena aikana. Maailma kylässä. Kaikki maistuu lopulta aivan samalta, hampuriaiselta pizzalta ja kebaabilta.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 132: Had I observed, except my own
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 139: Changed jobs, and saw myself a fool.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 162: To be observed by foreigners.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 178: Nissim kävi sanasotaa Naipaulin kanssa siitä kumpi ompi intialaisempi. Naipaulin isoisä oli itäintiaani joka möi izensä velkaorjaxi Trininadiin ja Tobagoon. Sen äiti väitti polveutuvansa bramiineista. Nissim on syntyperäinen marathin puhuja ja koko ikänsä Intiassa asunut, mutta sehän on juutalainen hitto vie! Rodullistetut rodullistivat toisiansa rankasti. Kumpi ja Kampi tappelivat kumpi voitti. Intiassa on kuukin kummempi.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 180: In awarding Naipaul the 2001 Nobel Prize in Literature, the Swedish Academy praised his work "for having united perceptive narrative and incorruptible scrutiny in works that compel us to see the presence of suppressed histories." Kukahan tonkin runoili, olikohan kulturpersonligheten. The Committee added: "Naipaul is a modern philosopher carrying on the tradition that started originally with Lettres persanes and Candide. In a vigilant style, which has been deservedly admired, he transforms rage into precision and allows events to speak with their own inherent irony." The Committee also noted Naipaul's affinity with the novelist Joseph Conrad (toinen kaappikolonialisti pyllypää):
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 184: Naipaul's fiction and especially his travel writing have been criticised for their allegedly unsympathetic portrayal of the Third World. The novelist Robert Harris has called Naipaul's portrayal of Africa racist and "repulsive," reminiscent of Oswald Mosley's fascism. Edward Said argued that Naipaul "allowed himself quite consciously to be turned into a witness for the Western prosecution", promoting what Said classified as "colonial mythologies about wogs and darkies". Said believed that Naipaul's worldview may be most salient in his book-length essay The Middle Passage (1962), composed following Naipaul's return to the Caribbean after 10 years of exile in England, and the work An Area of Darkness (1964).
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 190: The actual world has for Naipaul a radiance that diminishes all ideas of it. The pink haze of the bauxite dust on the first page of Guerrillas tells us what we need to know about the history and social organization of the unnamed island on which the action takes place, tells us in one image who runs the island and for whose profit the island is run and at what cost to the life of the island this profit has historically been obtained, but all of this implicit information pales in the presence of the physical fact, the dust itself. ... The world Naipaul sees is of course no void at all: it is a world dense with physical and social phenomena, brutally alive with the complications and contradictions of actual human endeavour. ... This world of Naipaul's is in fact charged with what can only be described as a romantic view of reality, an almost unbearable tension between the idea and the physical fact ...
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 198: Vidiadhar Surajprasad Naipaul, kirjailijanimeltään V. S. Naipaul (17. elokuuta 1932 Chaguanas, Trinidad ja Tobago – 11. elokuuta 2018 Lontoo, Englanti) oli Nobel-palkittu trinidadilais-brittiläinen kirjailija, joka oli intialaista sukujuurta.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 215: this I am always observing,
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 355: we went to the photographic studio of Lobo and Fernandes,
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 414: The Nigerian 419 scammers experience a high rate of success because people are often willing to risk a small amount of money in order to take a chance on getting a much larger reward. It’s a type of scam known as advance fee fraud, and it’s not the only example to be found online. Nigerian scams typically fall under the category of ‘beneficiary funds’. That is, they ask victims for money to help access large funds held in trust for stranded family members or a similar sob story.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 435: Nutida Sveriges "vänsteralternativ" till Paludan är den gamla ekonomiliberala EU-käringen Camilla Malmström som kryper ut ur skrevorna med Nato-optionen. "Finland och Sverige har mycket att ge Nato och frimarknadsavtalen", säger hon förnöjd saken rakt ut. Det ska bli en del av prislappen på AR-gevärena på Åland och kärnrobotarna på östgränsen. Vi (ni) ska inte vara som fransmännen några protektionister, ojoj har ni ännu strejker i Finland, det låter ju som Frankrike, skrattar Cecilia hjärtligt. Nå det skall det bli stopp på när Natoavtalen är klara.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 441: För strömningstjänsterna är fripassagerarna ett problem eftersom de sänker bolagens vinster. Bolagen ägs mestadels av medelålders män, som i högre utsträckning än andra grupper uppger sig vara själviska snåljåpar.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 443: Tidigare när antalet kunder växte stadigt var det här inte så stort problem. Me nu börjar vissa marknader vara mättade och det är svårare att göra jättestora vinster. I början av året tappade Netflix användare för första gången sedan 2011. Samtidigt har bolagets aktie backat 68 procent sedan årsskiftet.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 447: Han medger nog att problemet inte är att lösenorden delas mellan Netflixanvändare, men ändå fitta. Vi borde göra det svårt att ryska cyberkriminella kommer på våra Netflix-lösenord och slipper betala för att glo på Netflix-filmer. Det är vår patriotiska skyldighet som blivande NATO-medlemmar.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 458: Tiistairistikossa tuli vastaan vuoden 1906 nobelisti, joka vaikutti tuiki tuntemattomalta, aivan never heardilta, vaikka onhan mun ollut pakko joskus lukea siltä ainaskin 3 runoa, ne mitkä Aale Tynni on väkertänyt tiiliskiveen 1000 laulujen vuotta. Kysesssä on siis italialainen Carducci, joka tunnetaan mm. siitä, että "hänen poliittiset mielipiteensä olivat ailahtelevaisia, ja hän on kirjoittanut yhtä tulisieluisia tekstejä tasavallan puolesta kuin sitä vastaan." Siitä huolimatta tai ehkä sixi hänet äänestettiin senaattiin vuonna 1890.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 508: Nobelisti Carducci ja Mr. Unification Martin Kay. Puutarha- ja mezämansikka.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 552: Lari on Etelä- ja Kaakkois-Aasiassa elävä erittäin uhanalainen gibbonilaji. Tämä gibboni laskeutuu tuskin koskaan maan pinnalle. Se pysyttelee puissa ja liikkuu reviirinsä halki heilahtamalla oksalta toiselle. Naaras ja uros pysyttelevät yhdessä yleensä koko elämänsä ajan. Hylobates lar. Puukävelijä kotihaltija.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 559: Ei Darwinkaan tullut mistään tyhjiöstä, kehitysajatuxia oli ollut maailman sivu. Sen ansio oli rakentaa koko paska kausaaliselityxelle ja perustaa näyttö systemaattiselle havainnoinnille. Lari kantaa yxinkertaiseti kaunaa äidille eze lensi pääskyn lailla etelään ja jätti Larin nälkiintymään tunneköyhän isän kanssa kotipesälle. Lari on anaalis-obsessiivinen.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 577: one of the many minor globes of Space: Yhdellä pienehköllä kiertotähdellä:
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 649: with Elves and Goblins, though we dared to build Menninkäisillä ja päivänsäteillä, vaikka kekattais
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 697: and stir the unseen with a throbbing string. Ja aikaansaada mahtavia viboja.
xxx/ellauri200.html on line 749: Artefakti oli Dispenserin eräs pelihahmo, robotti Taluxen kumppani. Paizi ezen nimi oli oikeasti Artegal. Taluxen kanssa se personoi oikeutta joka käy armosta.
xxx/ellauri201.html on line 142: Stig-Erland avled hastigt på arbetet i hjärtinfarkt den 9 november 2004 vid 50 års ålder. Innan han avled fanns tre deckare färdigställda, den så kallade Millennium. Larsson hade först förgäves försökt intressera Piratförlaget för serien om Millennium. Efter att Larssons bekant Robert Aschberg läst den då outgivna serien, ringde Aschberg till Norstedts Förlag och bad dem läsa böckerna. Norstedts beslutade 2004 att ge ut serien då det nu var säkert att göra det.
xxx/ellauri201.html on line 210: Tiistairistikon nobelarvoituxen oikee vastaus oli tänään tuiki tuntematon Bjornstjerne Bjornson. Erwin Rauppin potretissa se on tosi pölhön näköinen, tukka sekaisin ja polisongit pörhössä. Miten vitussa tälläinen pönttöpää pääs pokkaamaan dynamiittiäijän miljoonan?
xxx/ellauri201.html on line 228: Nobelprisen
xxx/ellauri201.html on line 229: Nobelprisen i litteratur
xxx/ellauri201.html on line 233: Bjørnstjerne Martinus Bjørnson (8. desember 1832–26. april 1910) var ein norsk forfattar og samfunnsdebattant. Bjørnson vann Nobelprisen i litteratur for 1903, som den første nordmannen, og er rekna som ein av dei fire store i norsk litteratur. Han skreiv teksten til den norske nasjonalsongen og var grunnleggjaren av Riksmålsforbundet.
xxx/ellauri201.html on line 237: Eikä siinä kaikki! Karhunpoika istui ize valkkaamassa izeään Nobel-palkintokomiteassa! No jo on paxua.
xxx/ellauri201.html on line 239: Bjørnson var ein av dei opphavlege medlemene av Nobelkomiteen, og han vart attvald i 1900. I 1903 mottok han Nobel sin litteraturpris.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 36: Tänään aiheena on 2 hirmu paxua Nobel-kaliiperin lukuromaania. Kolmannexi sopisi Romain Rollandin Jean-Christophe, muttei satu olemaan käsillä.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 38: Mihail Aleksandrovitš Šolohov (ven. Михаил Александрович Шолохов, 24. toukokuuta (J: 11. toukokuuta) 1905 – 21. helmikuuta 1984) oli venäläinen kirjailija. Hän sai Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon vuonna 1965. Tää liittyi Rutsevin aikaiseen suojasäähän, ja oli eräänlainen Rutseville suunnattu "Hinoa John", jatka tähän tapaan, vapauta ainakin pikkukapitalistit suunnittelutalouden ikeestä.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 42: Šolohov liittyi kommunistiseen puolueeseen 1922 ja pysyi sille uskollisena koko uransa. Hän oli Neuvostoliiton kirjailijaliiton toimielimissä vuodesta 1934 ja vuodesta 1936 maan korkeimman neuvoston jäsen. Hän seurasi Nikita Hruštšovia presidenttinaä 1959 ja valittiin keskuskomiteaan 1961. Hänestä tuli tiedeakatemian jäsen 1939. Hän oli kaksinkertaisen sosialistisen työn sankari ja palkittiin sekä Leninin että Stalinin palkinnolla Trotskin palkinnon ja Nobelin lisäksi. Tätä virhettä Ruozin olympiakomitea sittemmi katkerasti katui.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 44: Hiljaa virzaa, Don kertoo Donin ja kasakoiden kamppailusta puna-armeijaa vastaan sisällissodan aikana ja on merkittävä siksi, ettei siinä ole yhtään positiivista bolševikkihahmoa. Siitäpä se saikin Nobel-palkinnon. Hiljaa virtaa Don on sosialistisen realismin merkkiteoksia, vaikkakaan se ei täysin noudata sen kaavaa. Vielä paxumpaa potaskaa Nobel-lautakunnan mielestä oli Aron raiskaajat.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 52: Roger Martin du Gard (23. maaliskuuta 1881 Neuilly-sur-Seine, Ranska – 22. elokuuta 1958 Sérigny, Ranska) oli ranskalainen kirjailija, jolle myönnettiin Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinto vuonna 1937.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 56: Opiston poistohyllystä taisi löytyä ennen lähtöä Les Thibaultin Tome III pokkarina. Jäi vähän vaivaamaan, ja kun tänään löysin Kontista kontillisen du Gardin kontillisen kirjan suomennoxia, ostaa paukautin ne edulliseen keväthintaan 6e/4 nidettä. Kotiin tultua selvisi että vielä 2 jatko-osaa uupuu (ne on Noobelin ja sodan jälkeisiä lämmityxiä). Niitä ei kukaan jaxanut enää lukea, saati suomentaa. Jos oikein onni potkaisee, puuttuvat 2 osaa sisältyvät löytämääni ranskalaiseen pokkariin. Minkähänlainen poliittinen tilaus tääkin du Gard lienee ollut. Pari urheaa suomalaista kirjabloggaria on punnertanut sen läpitte suunnilleen näin.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 60: Mielenliikutusten ja tunteiden myrskyn silmässä. Roger Martin du Gard oli ranskalainen kirjailija, joka palkittiin Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnolla vuonna 1937. Vaikka hän on kirjoittanut suuren määrän sivuja, voidaan kuitenkin tärkeimpänä saavutuksena pitää Thibault'n suku (Les Thibault) kehitysromaanisarjaa, johon sisältyy ranskankielisenä yhteensä kahdeksan osaa. Näistä löytyy suomennettuna kuusi ensimmäistä osaa, jotka on sisällytettynä neljään kirjaan. Sain ne 6 egellä Tammiston Kontista. Päätin tällä kertaa aloittaa ensimmäisestä kirjasta.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 76: Se johtuu varmaan pillereiden puutteesta. Keskeiseen osaan nousee myös Thibaultin veljesten erilaisuus - kun nuorempi vaalii moraalikäsityksiään, niin vanhempi luopuu pikkuhiljaa niistä. Martin du Gard onnistuu ihmisten luonteiden ja keskinäisten suhteiden kuvauksessa lähes täydellisesti, voikin todeta että hän on tässä kasvuromaanisarjassa yltänyt maailmankirjallisuuden A-ryhmään Nobel-tasolle. Harmi ettei hänen kirjojaan kovinkaan hyvin tunneta (ainakaan Suomessa). Se olisi tuiki tärkeää, ei niiden lukemisella muuten voi paljon kerskua. Kuitenkin kirjojen verkkainen kerronta saattaa nousta haasteeksi lukijalle. Ilmeisesti sarjan eri jaksoissa on painopiste vaihteleva eri ihmisten ja teemojen osalta. Ranskalaisessa kirjallisuudessa osataan ottaa kaikki irti ihmisten vastenmielisistä piirteistä.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 156: Roger Martin du Gard pokkasi tästä hyvästä Nobelin kirjallisuuden palkinnon vuonna 1937. Ei kai tämä ole sellainen klassikko, joka kuluisi kansojen känsäisissä käsissä, mutta minusta tässä on paljon ansioita, ja kuten mainitset osat ovat varsin lyhyitä.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 178: André Gide on arvostettu hahmo ranskalaisen kansakunnan kaapin päällä ja Nobelin palkinnon saaja vuonna 1947. Mutta tässä teoksessa piirretystä kiehtovasta, omituisesta ja intiimistä muotokuvasta voi nauttia joku, joka ei ole koskaan lukenut tai ehkä koskaan edes kuullut hänestä. Hän yllättää meidät jatkuvasti inhimillisyytensä laajuudella. Kirja tuo esiin hänen ristiriitaisen seksuaalisuutensa ja taistelunsa homoseksuaalisuuden hyväksymisestä leimautumisen ja tuomitsemisen aikakaudella.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 182: Salakuuntelemme näitä kahta merkittävää miestä, jotka molemmat ovat Nobel-palkinnon saajia, kun he vaeltavat maaseudulla pitkillä kävelyillä tai istuvat tulessa lasillisen viiniä illallisen jälkeen ja tutkivat aina kaikkea auringon alla ja lakanoiden välissä: heidän elämäänsä ja työtään, mytologiaansa, kuolemaa. Se on rehellinen ja paljastava. Kuuntelemme ja opimme, ja käsityksemme muuttuvat ja syvenevät. Vaikka tämä pieni mutta täydellinen helmi kirjaxeen, joka on kirjoitettu mestarillisella taiteella, valaisee ymmärrystämme suuresta nerokkaasta miehestä ja elämän luonteesta, niin käy selväxi että du Gard ei ollut edes yhtä suuri eikä nerokas kuin Andre Gide, vaikka kummallakin oli puolesa (etenkin taka-).
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 187: Erityisesti elämänsä loppupuolella Gidestä tulee yhä oudompi, itsekeskeinen snobi, sellainen henkilö, joka on tullut liian kuuluisaksi menneisyytensä perusteella ja saa siksi liian vähän vastustusta.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 196: Roger Martin du Gard (23 March 1881 – 22 August 1958) was a French novelist, winner of the 1937 Nobel Prize for Literature. Martin du Gard, homosexual by inclination and avocation, was miserably married to a devout Catholic who despised all his literary friends. Martin du Gard is much impressed with the fine appearance of the German race. The handsome boys and beautiful young girls are, to him, a reincarnation of ancient Greece. Martin du Gard reported back to André Gide on the wonders and delights of Berlin, where he had found the young involved in ‘natural, gratuitous pleasures, sport, bathing, free love, games, [and] a truly pagan, Dionysiac freedom’.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 198: He spent most of his time there wandering around ‘the less salubrious districts of the city’, noticing (relative to Paris) the many prostitutes of both sexes and the ready availability of pornography. Encouraged by such reports, André Gide visited Berlin no fewer than five times in 1933. He, too, was delighted by, and seriously interested in, what he found there, although he did concede to Robert Levesque that Paris itself was slowly becoming more Berlin-like even if at the same time (to use that most erotically evocative of geographical terms) more ‘southern’. The two writers coincided in Berlin in October, Gide arriving for a fortnight, Martin du Gard for five weeks. They did their best to avoid each other on their forays into the sexual underworld, but always dutifully compared notes on what they had seen and experienced.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 200: Martin du Gard posed as a specialist in matters sexual in order to attend interviews with homosexual men at Magnus Hirschfeld’s Institute. He also toured the gay clubs, nominating as his favourites the Hollandais and the lesbian Monocle. Christopher Isherwood was at Hirschfeld’s Institute on the day that Gide was given a guided tour, Gide ‘in full costume as The Great French Novelist, complete with cape’. Retrospectively calling him a ‘Sneering culture-conceited frog!’ from the safety of the mid-1970s – and in doing so sounding like a rather uptight, Francophobic D.H. Lawrence – Isherwood failed to consider that Gide’s pose might have been a way of giving Hirschfeld’s project the serious imprimatur of a symbolic cultural visit, to which the cape and the performed ‘greatness’ were essential embellishments.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 202: Les Thibault est une suite romanesque de Roger Martin du Gard, composée de huit volumes d'inégale longueur dont la publication s'est étalée de 1922 à 1940. C’est tout particulièrement pour cette œuvre, et bien qu'il lui restât encore à en écrire l'Épilogue, que Roger Martin du Gard reçut, en novembre 1937, le prix Nobel de littérature.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 210: Il découvra sa vocation d'écrivain en se liant à un jeune garçon de deux ans son aîné, Jean Werhlé, pendant l'été qu'il passe à Maisons-Laffitte en 1891. Il obtient en 1898 son baccalauréat, dans la série Philosophie, avec mention passable, comme Max Roth. Sankarihahmo kääntyy takaisin kadotuxen tieltä fideismiin: älä järkeile, seuraa sydäntäsi vaan. Historiquement, les philosophes associés au fidéisme sont Søren Kierkegaard, Blaise Pascal, William James et Ludwig Wittgenstein.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 212: Anatole France (oik. Jacques Anatole François Thibault, 16. huhtikuuta 1844 Pariisi – 12. lokakuuta 1924 Saint-Cyr-sur-Loire, Indre-et-Loire) oli ranskalainen kirjailija, joka sai Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon vuonna 1921. Katolinen kirkko kielsi 1920-luvulla hänen teostensa levittämisen niiden sisältämien sosialististen piirteiden vuoksi lähde?. Francen tunnetuimpia romaaneja on Kuningatar Hanhenjalan ravintola (1892), joka on kuvaelma 1700-luvun Ranskasta. Hänet tunnetaan myös aforismeistaan. Francen syvällisimpänä kirjana pidetään romaania Enkelten kapina. Vähän se on köykänen kaveri knebelbarteineen, mutta kova panomies.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 225: Il vit au milieu des livres, la cité des livres, mais se lance à la recherche, en Sicile et à Paris, du précieux manuscrit de La Légende dorée qu’il finit un jour par obtenir. Le hasard lui fait rencontrer la petite fille d’une femme qu’il a jadis aimée et, pour "protéger" l’enfant d’un autre tuteur abusif, il l’enlève. Après plusieurs années de bon usage par Sylvestre, la jeune fille épousera un élève de M. Bonnard. Tollanen pedofiilinen Goethen Mignon taas.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 229: Conservateur en esthétique, mais progressiste en politique, France trouve dans l'affaire Dreyfus son Histoire contemporaine (l'Orme du mail, 1897 ; le Mannequin d'osier, 1897 ; l'Anneau d'améthyste, 1899 ; Monsieur Bergeret à Paris, 1901). Il a aussi prêté sa plume aux diverses manifestations de la gauche militante. (Académie française, 1896 ; prix Nobel 1921).
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 275: Putin's power comes from his gangster allies, in exchange for money the gangsters support him. The problem is that the gangsters demand a never ending flow of money.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 294: The problem with swimming with sharks is that everything is a source of food, even the other sharks.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 296: Us sharks will end up gobbling up Ukraina too, you bet!
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 309: You can see it in Jordan Peterson - he has no problem admitting that he doesn't know something. It doesn't hurt his self-confidence. It does not hurt him to admit that he is a crazy fascist and a shithead. Because he is that too above the average.
xxx/ellauri202.html on line 350: Frank alleged that letters between Schicklgruber and Frankenberger Sr. corroborated this theory, as Frankenberger had sent money to Schicklgruber for child support. Frank suggested this as evidence that Hitler’s paternal grandfather was indeed Jewish — making Hitler a quarter Jewish.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 4:
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 50: Wellbeck panee juutalaista opiskelijaansa Myriamia: Mnää käänsin hänet selälleen, siirsin reidet haralleen ja tein sormella. Hän oli pian märkä, ja minä työnnyin sisään muitta mutkitta. Han oli aina pitänyt tuosta yksinkertaisesta lähetyssaarnaaja-asennosta. Nostin hänen jalkojan päästäkseni oikein syvälle ja liikuin edes takaisin. Lantioni liikkui pehmeästi, väsymättä, muutaman minuutin kuluttua Myriam alkoi voihkia, sitten huutaa, ja minä jatkoin nussimista, jatkoin vielä sittenkin kun hänen pillunsa supissteli kullini ympärillä, hengitin hitaasti, vaivattomasti, tuntui kuin olisin ollut tietäjä iän ikuinen, pannut piika pikkaraista, navan alle naputellut suurella sukunuijalla. Sitten hän päästi pitkän uikutuksen, painauduin häntä vasten ja kiedoin käteni hänen ympärilleen, ja hän hoki: >>Kulta rakas... Kulta rakas. Ja itki. Aika peruskauraa. Oliko Mikin prepuce penetraatiossa rullalla kuin Steve Jobsin turtleneck vaiko ehkä maantäyttönä Joosuan esinahkakasassa? Tarina ei kerro. Mirjamia olis sellainen nahkarengas voinut kenties ällöttää. Se ei ole kosheria.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 404: Some magazine observed of his writing style: "Whenever possible Chesterton made his points with popular sayings, proverbs, allegories—first carefully turning them inside out." Biographers have identified him as a successor to such Victorian authors as Matthew Arnold, Thomas Carlyle, John Henry Newman and John Ruskin. Vankkaa porukkaa.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 471: Naguib Mahfouz (arab. نجيب محفوظ, Naġīb Maḥfūẓ; 11. joulukuuta 1911 Kairo – 30. elokuuta 2006 Kairo) oli egyptiläinen kirjailija. Mahfouz sai Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon vuonna 1988. Hän toimi muun muassa Egyptin valtion elokuvasäätiön ja taikaministeriön palveluksessa.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 480: Vuoden 1988 Nobelin palkinnon myötä egyptiläiseltä kirjailijalta Naguib Mahfouzilta (1911-2006) suomennettiin englannista novelli ”Siunatttu yö” (sic, kolmella teellä, 1988) ja arabiasta muutamia romaaneja vuosina 1989-1996. Sen jälkeen hän näyttää Suomessa joutuneen unohduksiin sikäli, että uusia suomennoksia ei ole ilmestynyt. Tässä suhteessa hänelle on käynyt samoin kuin toiselle nobelistille, australialaiselle eepikolle Patrick Whitelle. Kumpikin ansaitsisi tulla uudestaan huomioiduksi uusien käännösten muodossa. Näin siitäkin huolimatta, että Mahfouzin suomennettuihin romaaneihin eräät kriitikot suhtautuvat melko nihkeästi ja pitävät niitä helvetin vanhakantaisina.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 482: Mahfouz kuuluu niihin kirjailijoihin, jotka ovat ikuistaneet itselleen läheisen suurkaupungin. Hänen tapauksessaan se on Kairo, josta hän on kirjoittanut suuren ns. Kairo-trilogian (suomennettu otsikoilla Palatsikatu, Intohimon palatsi ja Sokerikuja). Hänen teoksensa Midaqq-kuja sijoittuu myös Kairoon, toisen maailmansodan aikaan, mutta lähes kokonaan pienelle kujalle. Se on takakannen mukaan "egyptiläisen Nobel-mestarin rakastetuin teos". Vittu puskarunkkukin on parempaa viihdettä.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 615: Retired porn actor Randy West oli hölmön näköinen kaveri. On kai se hölmö vieläkin vaikka on jo retardi. Se on Piki Zillesin ikätoveri. In August 1980 he garnered attention when he became the first model to appear in the centerfold of Playgirl magazine with an erection. He was Robert Redford 's body double in a film where a couple's marriage is disrupted by a stranger's offer of a million dollars for the wife to spend the night with him. It stars Robert Redford, Demi Moore, and Woody Harrelson. It received mostly negative reviews, but was a box-office success, grossing nearly $267 million worldwide on a $38 million budget. West has never married or fathered children, which he blames on his career for making it hard for him to form "normal relationships." As of 2013, he spends his time competing in celebrity golf tournaments for charity. Rikullakaan ei ole lapsia. Se nai kyllä kovasti mutta muuta annettavaa ei sillä ole. Tässä episodissa teemoina ovat EAT! ja FUCK!. KILL! on mukana vaan tausta-ajatuxena: ellei tule lasta ei kohta tule enää paskaakaan.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 896: On tää Onnelikin täysin tärähtänyt. Anaalis-retentiivinen sekobolzi. Onko naiskirjailijoissa isompi prosentti obsessioita kuin väestössä keskimäärin? Suattaapa hyvin ollakin. Tollasia yxinäisiä vilijonkkia. Ei ole terveellistä kirjailijoille että niillä on noin paljon luppoaikaa. Siitä tulee justiinsa tätä nauseaa. Kyllä tämäkin Idström haaveili isokullisesta pollarista nimeltä Marttinen joka ei ota edes kypärää päästä noustessaan Annikalle. Naiset ovat Anuxesta ja miehet Perseestä. Mieskynäilijät ovat järjestään narsisteja ja naiset pyllynreikiä.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 932: Se ei ihan täydellisesti toteutunut. Mutta puhuimme. Cay ei koskaan antautunut sänkyperunaksi. Ehkä salaperäinen hra Idström oli ammatiltaan nekrologi. Niitä on taannottain kuollut Hoblassa pilvin pimein. Nääh, se oli juoppo kaupparazu joka ei varmaan sietänyt tarmokasta vaimoaan.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 955: Sinitaivas käsittelee naisen näkökulmasta, osin Märta Tikkasen 1970-luvulla aloittaman feministisen kirjallisuuden hengessä kipeitä aiheita: hylätyksi tulemista, eronneitten naisten ja yksinhuoltajaäitien sosiaalista ja taloudellista putoamista, äitiyden problematiikkaa, naisen halua ja kaipuuta ja mielen järkkymistä. Mutta vasta seuraava romaani, 1981 ilmestynyt Isäni, rakkaani, aloitti samana vuonna ilmestyneen Anja Kaurasen Sonja O. kävi täällä -romaanin kanssa suomalaisessa naiskirjallisuudessa uuden ajan. Molemmat lähtivät "hyvää makua" herjaavalla, epäsovinnaisella ja rankalla tavalla purkamaan suomalaista perheidylliä ja käänsivät vanhempi–lapsi-suhteita sekä miehen ja naisen roolimalleja nurin. Eikä Isäni, rakkaani ollut mitään "isänpäivälukemista", vaan se sai kriitikon ihmettelemään: " - - merkitseekö naisen emansipaatio yhteiskunnassa sitä, että hänen täytyy omaksua kirjallisuudessa ennen miehille varatut karkeat tyylikeinot tuon pyhän tasa-arvon nimissä".
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 965: Isäni, rakkaani -romaanin ja Veljeni Sebastianin jälkeen Annika Idström niputettiin suomalaisen 1980-luvun kirjallisuuden "pahan koulukuntaan" yhdessä muun muassa Anna-Maija Ylimaulan, Eira Stenbergin, Esa Sariolan ja Juha Seppälän kanssa. Hyvän ja pahan ikuisen problematiikan käsittelyssä näitä muuten varsin erilaisia kirjailijoita yhdisti kylmän viileä ja moralisoimaton tapa nostaa esiin pahaa ihmisessä.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1048: Madeleine vanished from her family’s holiday apartment in Praia da Luz, Portugal on May 3, 2007. Tää isonenäreikäinen kaveri oli käärinyt sen huoparullaan josta pisti lapsen jalat. Yhtä tumpelo kuin Raatimiehenkadun Bob.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1059: Atra-Hasis boards the boat with his family and animals, then seals the door. The storm and flood begin, and even the gods are afraid. After seven days, the flood ends and Atra-Hasis offers sacrifices to the gods. Enlil is furious with Enki for violating his oath, but Enki denies doing so: "I made sure life was preserved." In conclusion, Enki and Enlil agree on other means for controlling the human population, like global warming.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1060: The words "river" and "riverbank" are used in Tablet III, probably in reference to the Euphrates, the river upon which the ancient city Shuruppak, ruled by Atra-Hasis, was located.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1128: Jos Gebel oliskin ikäänkun Jaakob, ja toi käärmeenlumooja Balkiti olis niikö Laaban. Kaivolla oli jollain pissaliisalla ekat rehvit, mut oliko ne isäpappa Iisakki ja Rebekka? Aaprahammi oli maahanmuuttaja. Safira eli Safak olis se herkkuperse Raakel, ja Sayida sen rumempi isosisko Lea, jota piti naida ensinnä. Paizi ei pitänytkään tässä versiossa. Gebelin vällykäärme löysi vikkelästi tien Safakin koloon. Safakilla oli söpöt tazkat tisuissa. Gebel huudahtelee Good God! kuin Poirotin yhtä tyhmä Captain Hastings. Musta alkaa vaikuttaa et tää kynäilijä Naabob on tyhmä kuin saapas izekin. Ärsyttävä munamies Gebel alkaa osoittaa isänmaallisuuden oireita. Tamarind on pahoillaan että Hamaamin miehet ovat ihan ämmiä. Montakohan äpäräpoikaa löytyy Jee-suxenkin sukupuusta. Todennäköisyys on n. 15%.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1135: Gebel stood in the yard naked and talked to his snake until it came on its own accord obediently. See? no hands! Mix käärmeille on sipistävä nimenomaan nakuna? Jotta ne näkevät pikkuveikkansa. Ilmeisesti pahat mafiosot on kaiken kukkuraksi homoja.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1151: Nää tarinat on jotenkin samalla lailla pasquoja kuin sen yhden nobelistiranskixen pseudohistoriallinen nide, samantyyppistä narsistista mahtailua, supermiesgenreä. Mikäs se oli? No se Romain Rollandin mestari Breugnon.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1158: Rifaa kuuli yöllä ääniä, se oli vuorenpeikko hereillä. Rakastetun pojan tehtävä on duunata vanhan isoisän sijasta. Poinzi on ettei luvattua maata tarvita, jokainen voi päästä omin käsin onneen. Näin sanoen Max tuli vihdoin ulos garderoobista.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1161: Rifaan ja Jasminen häihin tulee vaan nobodyjä ilmaisen lounaan toivossa. Voi saatana. Vaikka Jasmine on hyvä pano varmasti, ei tarvis sängyssä jalan reikää kauan eziä.
xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1173: Toi mitä ne kuzuu honourixi ei ole muuta kuin paikka pecking orderissa. On se sit vittua. On tosi tärkeetä pitää pyramidi kasassa ettei tule tollasia flash mobbeja. Asioita ei päätetä
xxx/ellauri209.html on line 3:
xxx/ellauri209.html on line 89: You might be wondering that if all wholesalers do is take product from distributors and provide it to retailers, isn't that just an extra unnecessary step? Well, it's extremely important because of the relationship that the wholesalers have with retailers which the distributors don't have, improving and increasing the product's reach and allowing the companies to get more market share, and hence increase their sales. Don't believe me? The wholesale industry globally is worth around $48,478 billion in 2020, which seems massive but is actually a decline from 2019 when the wholesale industry was worth $48,761 billion. I'm sure you'll know that the reason for this decline is the Covid-19 pandemic which has wreaked havoc across the world, and sent most countries across the world into either a recession or a depression. As travel was banned both domestically and especially internationally, the global supply chain was devastated which has led to a contraction in most industries and economies, and wholesalers of course are involved in most industries and hence, have had to face the effect as well.
xxx/ellauri209.html on line 122: Avaan seuraavan Rei Shimura-tarinan. Naisnarsismi hulvahtaa kasvoille heti alkusivuilta sakeana kuin DC:n savuisen yöklubin naistenhuoneen höyrähdys. Milli-Molli jää lähtötelineisiin kuin tikku paskaan. Tuttu kivahteleva anaalis-obsessiivinen apinanaama kurkistaa ökytaxin ovesta. Koko yöklubi on varattu sen 30v syntymäpäiville. Turhaan skotti Hugh puuhaa sekä hääräilee, Rei päätyy kohta kuitenkin koppalakkiseen jenkkisotilaaseen, kuten intialaissaxalainen Sujata izekin. Se on muuten nyttemmin lakannut väsäämästä näitä epäuskottavia japsudekkareita, nyze on omasta mielestään tunnetumpi intialaissankaristaan, jostain Pervosta. Rein uusi hovimestariystävä menee porttivornikaxi ettei juhliin livahda maxuttomia vieraita. Mauttomat kuzuvieraat riittävät. Järjestelyt ovat kuin Riku Rinkulan synttäreillä Eirassa.
xxx/ellauri209.html on line 152: sitäkään. Multakin on jäänyt parin viikon hoblat rästiin. Eikä yhtään harmita. Tässä vain yhden nummeron satoa.
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 4:
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 47: Rakastettu niinkuin ei enää kukaan muu. amata nobis quantum amabitur nulla.
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 54: Vaan tiukka mutru huuleen, selkä vastatuuleen. sed obstinata mente perfer, obdura.
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 56: Moido kinkku, kyllä Kollaa kestää, Vale puella, iam Catullus obdurat,
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 63: Kolli raukka, pysy lujana. At tu, Catulle, destinatus obdura.
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 101: But quick-eyed Love, observing me grow slack
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 190: Kakeru in this context means to shower or pour. The word bukkake is often used in Japanese to describe pouring out a liquid with sufficient momentum to cause splashing or spilling. Indeed, bukkake is used in Japan to describe a type of dish where hot broth is poured over noodles, as in bukkake udon and bukkake soba.
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 309: McGraw is also a private pilot, with an instrument rating, flying single-engine airplanes. McGraw is Christian. McGraw launched the charity, Dr. Phil Foundation, in October, 2003.
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 349: Havainnoistaan Yhdysvalloissa talouden Nobel-palkinnon saanut Angus Deaton on kutsunut vastaavia kuolemia ”epätoivon kuolemiksi” (”death of despair”). Epätoivon kuolemien määrä on kasvanut jo niin paljon, että yleinen eliniänodote Yhdysvalloissa on laskenut. Tämä tapahtui jo ennen koronapandemiaa. Asiasta kertoo esimerkiksi Los Angeles Times.
xxx/ellauri212.html on line 425: "Thérèse Dreaming," which was finished in 1938, was Balthus's first painting of an underage model, according to the Village Voice. Balthus toned down the eroticism in his paintings later in his career, but he remained defensive of it: ''I really don't understand why people see the paintings of girls as Lolitas,'' he told the New York Times in 1996. ''My little model is absolutely untouchable to me." For all his artwork, Balthus's biographies and obituaries haven't published evidence of pedophilia in his personal life. Maybe his wee pencil was too shy to actually intrude inside his underage models. I bet he went afterward into the toilet with the canvas. Tai size taas vaan valehteli raukka nälissään, se oli ashkenazi jutku äiskän puolelta ja valehteli siitäkin. Toi kitaraa soittava ämmäoletettu on äijän izensä näköinen, mahtaisiko olla se Dorotea Spiro äitykkä. Sen veli oli jonkin sortin filosofi ja markiisi de Sade fänittäjä. Varmaan äiskä piti niitä pahoin ja niistä tuli jotain pervoja. Niljakasta porukkaa.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 4:
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 78: Tämä pikku video (kazo myös muut videot) on kuvattu endoskoopilla pimpsan sisältä: mulkku työntelee sisään halkinaista päätänsä, ahertaa kuin myyriäinen, venkuttaa ankarasti ahtaassa käytävässä kunnes runkku ruiskahtaa (9:55), lopuxi tero sysii sperman peremmälle bobcattina ja vetäytyy työnsä tehneenä esan perässä samaa tietä kuin tuli.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 80: Hoblan oikeistoämmät kuorossa ampuu alas sossupääministeriä. Pääministerihän on koko kansan esikuva, tahtoipa tai ei, ajatelkaa nyt vaikka sortsiasuista Alexander Stubbia tai Kempeleen kuminaamaa Suomen pienoislipun vieressä! Nej jössenas, bort med Marin, vi vill ha Föräldralös i stället. Han är ju man i alla fall, statens hemligheter står i bättre förvar hos han. Alla vet ju hur käringarna skvallrar speciellt när dom är fulla.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 84: Tässä vielä kuva Hoblan Erja Yläjärvestä oman vapaa-ajan harrastuxensa parista. Ontelossa pitää olla runkkua, ei välttämättä leipää eikä punkkua.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 100: It is obvious that rock and roll beats imitate these body rythms. Pelkkä BPM on turha mitta, pääasia on että biisistä löytyy kututahti sopivalla jaotuxella. That's just rock and roll but I like it. Synkopoitu tahti jolla mulkku jotmuilee sisään ulos vulvasta. In 2021, rock has gone quiet in a music landscape ruled by pop and hip-hop.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 177: Naatan kirjoittaa novellettan sukulaisistaan jotka olivat juuri sellaisia kitupiikkejä kusipäitä mixi antisemitistit on mokkereita aina kuvanneet. Sen isä jalkalääkäri varoittaa ettei sen kertominen ole aivan viisasta. Eikä olekaan. Mutta ei, Philip on valmis myymään vaikka isoäitinsä jos saa siitä laatuaikaa mediaan. Koska se on just yhtä perso sille kuin sukulaiset rahalle. Rouva Wapterin 10 kysymystä ovat aiheellisia. Rothin vastaus niihin on vaan näyttää fäkkiä. Sellainen kaippari se vaan nyt on, Knasun tyyppinen. Vaan eipä sitten saanut dynamiittimiehen pinssiä. Nobel piti positiivisista jutuista.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 192: Why is it, asked the teareyed history marm, that us goyim have always hated you mockies so much? Ask them not me says Amy. Well because you guys keep to your own company, are greedy as all hell and think you're better than us rest, though it was you guys who got your brother Christ nailed on The Cross and got $30 for the job.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 234: Neurologian professori Nummenmaa jongleeraa mind body feikkiprobleemaa perinteiseen idealistitapaan, ja käyttää sitten tilaisuutta hyväxeen puffataxeen rahoitusta omille palikkatutkimuxilleen. Marx ja Lenin teki selvän tästä kysymyksestä: mieli on korkeasti järjestäytyneen materian ominaisuus, sen toimintaa sen heijastaessa ympäröivää todellisuutta, tosin useinkin päin persettä, kuten tässä.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 337: Sysmiöstä tultua ruskettuneena voi lukea kalveten monen viikon kesänyytiset. Eurooppa on tulessa, Rein ja Thames kuivuneet, Arktis plussan puolella, inflaatio on taantumassa laantunut, Netflixin osake on romahtanut sen portattua miljoona isovenäläistä kazojaa, Suomen eduskunnan sivut tukittu kuin nakkikioski. Musk on myynyt Teslan osakkeita biljoonien edestä. Twitter-kaupat ovat tukossa. Dollarin arvo on 0,95 euroa. Vähävenäläiset sodan köyhdyttämät naiset myyvät pohjoismaihin akateemisesti koulittua jalkovakoa. Hyviä uutisia ja huonoja. Naurava kulkuri, tuo renessanssi-ihminen, on nauranut laitimmaisen naurunsa 77-vuotiaana. Aaahh-hah-hah-hahaa. Ma nauran, kuvani kun peilissä mä nään. Sentään positiivisella puolella on että Kiina ja Venäjä kaveeraavat keskenään. Hulluhan Kiina olisi jos ottais osaa länkkäreiden ryssävihaan, arvaa kyllä kuka on seuraavana vuorossa. Parasta on että kaasunpoltto, globalisaatio ja ryöstöviljely vähän taantuvat.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 343: Merete Mozzarella vaikuttaa Hoblan sunnuntaisaarnassa olevan hieman hädissään kun kuolema kolkuttaa sen ovella. Se pohtii enenevästi uskonasioita, eli minkä verran tarvii minimisti uskoa pelastuaxeen seuraavalle kierroxelle.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 380: The only thing that Putin and Russia understands is Western hitech power weapons pointed at their arses, and that is why Ukraine is doing exactly the right thing to spearhead the attack of a greater power (NATO) on a smaller one (Russia) as a human shield operated by NATO. Ukraine should not be Finlandized, unless of course it means NATO and EU membership and capitalism and globalization, or it should not be subdued to Russia in any way whatsoever. It does not stand at fault in this conflict. The only place to blame is the Kremlin."
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 382: "The fourth claim (oops, my bad, I lost count) is that this conflict is due to NATO expansion. NATO was originally created in 1949 as a deterrent to the Soviet Union. But when the Cold War ended, it took on a different tact, which was about peace keeping and crisis management, primarily, robbing the ragheads of their oil.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 386: Its mere existence has been a guarantee for peace. Now Putin has used NATO expansion as an excuse. But remember, he attacked Georgia after Gruzia started it and created the frozen conflict, only a few months after the NATO summit in Bucharest in 2008. That too had nothing to do with NATO. It had much more to do with an expansionist Russia and Putin who wanted to create their own spheres of interest and cause insecurity around his neighborhood. As if one big Western sphere of interest would not be enough globally.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 413: Aminatu (also Amina; died 1610) was a Hausa (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Hausa_people) Muslim (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Muslim) historical figure in the city-state (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Hausa_Kingdoms) Zazzau (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Zazzau) (present-day city of Zaria (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Zaria) in Kaduna State (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Kaduna_State)), in what is now in the north-west region of Nigeria (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Nigeria). She might have ruled in the mid-sixteenth century. A controversial figure whose existence has been questioned by some historians, her real biography has been somewhat obscured by subsequent legends and folk tales.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 421: After the suspicious death of her brother Karami in 1576, Amina ascended to the position of queen. Zazzau was one of the original seven Hausa States (Hausa Bakwai), the others being Daura, Kano, Gobir, Katsina, Rano, and Garun Gabas. Before Amina assumed the throne, Zazzau was one of the largest of these states. It was also the primary source of slaves that would be sold at the slave markets of Kano and Katsina by Arab merchants.
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 457: “Rabbi Yochanan observed: If the Torah had not been given, we could have learned modesty from the cat, honesty from the ant, chastity from the dove, and good manners from the rooster, who first coaxes and then mates.”
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 466: “Rav Hisda ruled: A man is forbidden to perform his marital duty in the daytime, for it is said, ‘And thou shalt love thy neighbor as thyself’ (Leviticus 19:18). But what is the proof? Abaye replied: He might observe something repulsive in her, and she would thereby become loathsome to him.”
xxx/ellauri215.html on line 504: The county does not have to do this, but the tradition, which dates back to 1896, has become a sacred event for the many county workers — coroners, researchers — whose job it is to investigate how people die in Los Angeles. Their work is a long process of figuring out who these people were, and if there are loved ones looking for them. Nearly all of the forgotten Angelenos honored this year died in 2015, and in most cases a relative was found but for whatever reason — financial hardship, estrangement — they did not want to claim the remains.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 5:
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 75:
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 81: Kuten mustavalkoisesta tv-kuvasta näkyy selvästi, Bobby Thomson ei ollut neekeri. Myöhemmin osoittautuu että se oli skotti. Branca oli puolixi joku Bulgarian romani. Mitäs asiaa Big Simsillä (joka oli) sit oli mennä karzalle huutamaan I am Bobby Thomson? Koska baseball is about caring, because it is about miracles against all odds. Usko toivo ja rakasta, 9.999.999 tyhjän arvan jälkeen tulee se oikea!
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 102: The Gulf War was an armed campaign waged by a United States-led coalition of 35 countries against Iraq in response to the Iraqi invasion and annexation of Kuwait. Confused? The United States won Gulf War 1 in 1991 by limiting its objective to "liberating Kuwait", that is, stopping the assault before invading Iraq.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 112: He believes the US can still successfully fight the wars of yesteryear — World War-style conflicts — but hasn’t yet mastered how to win wars against insurgents, which are smaller fights against groups within countries. The problem is the US continues to involve itself in those kinds of fights.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 115: “That’s not what war is like now. Now the way to win a war is to waft wads of dollars to the havenots and then sit back and watch while they do the dirty job."
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 125: Bush and Rumsfeld obviously believed in this Gulf War 2 scenario. They sneered at the nay-saying generals who demanded more troops and reinforcements to besiege Baghdad. Rummy felt certain that air strikes, with high tech bombs and guided missiles, would more than suffice. They knew, from their studies of selected books and articles written by their ideological neo-con mentors that the Iraqis would surrender rather than fight after US explosives showed them our power; so why the need for all those troops! The brilliant advisers, Deputy Defense Secretary Paul Wolfowitz and Richard Perle, recently resigned as Defense Advisory Board Chief, and other intellectuals had spun a convincing tale, one that included the oft-referenced domino theory. They convinced the lesser IQs like Rummy who in turn convinced the even more intellectually challenged president.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 155: obe-photosmediapunch-2A8X609.jpg" height="250px" />
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 236: Other animals were also a problem. Feral dog packs roamed the dump and were a hazard to employees. Rats also posed a problem. Attempts to suppress the New York population with poison failed. The area was declared a wild bird sanctuary, and some hawks, falcons, and owls were brought in. The area became a popular spot for birdwatching. Because of the predatory birds, rat sightings, especially during the day, dropped dramatically.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 244: After the September 11, 2001 attacks, Fresh Kills was temporarily re-opened to be used as a sorting ground for roughly one-third of the rubble from Ground Zero. More than 1,600 personal effects were retrieved during this time. About 1.6 million tons of material obtained from Ground Zero was taken to the landfill for sorting.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 254: Three Mile Islandin ydinvoimalaonnettomuus, joka tapahtui 28. maaliskuuta 1979 Three Mile Islandin ydinvoimalassa ollessani siinä lähimaisemissa, lähellä Harrisburgin kaupunkia Pennsylvanian osavaltiossa Yhdysvalloissa, on historian neljänneksi pahin ydinonnettomuus Tšernobylin, Kyštymin ja Fukushiman onnettomuuden jälkeen. Onnettomuus on sijoitettu luokkaan 5 kansainvälisellä ydinlaitostapahtumien IINES-asteikolla laitokselle aiheutuneen merkittävän materiaalisen vahingon vuoksi; ydinvoimalan kakkosyksikön (TMI-2) suklaasydän särkyi ja osittain suli onnettomuudessa. Onnettomuusyksikkö ehti olla käytössä alle vuoden.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 269: Laskeuma-alueen asukasmäärä oli 270 000. Alueelta jäi evakuoitavaxi kuitenkin vain 10 000 henkeä. Suurevakuointi suoritettiin siellä, missä ylittyi Sr-90:n, puoliintumisajaltaan 28,8 vuotta, kriittinen raja. Noin 800 km² suuruinen maa-alue julistettiin käyttökieltoon, mutta 82 prosenttia alueesta on myöhemmin metsitetty ja otettu maatalouskäyttöön. Villieläimet kiittävät, kuin myös Zernobylissä.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 318: Bobby Fischer poistatti amalgaamipaikat hampaista ennen Spasski-mazia ettei CCCP:n agentit lähettäisi niihin säteitä.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 322: Bobby Fischer changed the world! I believe he inherited some family mental disorders, and had deep issues regarding his father (as you may or may not know, Mr. Fischer was not his real father - his real father was a Hungarian (I believe a physicist) to whom Bobby bore an amazing resemblance! His BBC accent was just too good, so he must be a - Hungarian!
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 324: Spassky was a chess gentleman compared to Bobby, a genius who couldn't tie his own shoes. He went around applauding 9/11, and wanting to commit genocide.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 330: Fischer: Yes, I applaud the act. Look nobody gets.. no one.. that the US and Israel have been slaughtering the Palestinians for years. Robbing and slaughtering for years and treating everyone like shit. Now it is coming back at the US. Fuck the US, I wanna see the US wake up..
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 336: Fischer: Yeah. Nobody here gives a shit about the Japanese. How many hundreds of thousand people did the US kill with the atom bombs , justifying it with the most ridiculous excuse that it saved millions American soldiers, when Japan would gonna surrender in a few weeks or month or so anyway. Right? The United State is based on lies, is based on theft. Look what I have done for the US. Nobody has single handily done more for the US them me, I really believe in this. When I won the World Championship in 1972, the United States had an image of ,you know, a football country, baseball country, but nobody thought of it as an intellectual country. I turned all that around single handily, right? But I was useful then because it was the cold war, right? But now I'm not useful anymore, you see, the cold war is over and now they want to wipe me out, get everything I have, put me into prison.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 338: You have to go back to the root of history of the country, look at the history of the country. Get something for nothing. Take and kill. Rob the country, they don't come in a civilized manner and say we like to marry your women, and so on. No, they take your land and they kill you off. That's the history of the US. Why did the white man not come to America, like in a civilized manner, preaching freedom of religion, say we like to come here. We like to assimilate, we like to marry your women. But no, we take your land and kill you off , right? Bring over slaves from Africa. That's the history of the United States. A despicable country, you know. Even as a boy I never had the slightest interest in the history of the US, I knew their was something rotten in Denmark.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 349: Hetkinen, eikö Bobby ollut jutku izekin?
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 351: By the traditional definition of Judaism, everyone who has a Jewish mother is automatically Jewish. Which is all fine and well.But should the traditional definition apply in the case of Bobby Fischer? Once a brilliant chess champion, a transcendent genius, he descended into lunacy, claiming the Holocaust never happened, vindicating September 11 attacks, and denouncing his Jewish roots, even writing to the Encyclopedia Judaica asking for his name to be taken out.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 353: So what are we to do with this nut job? He clearly stated that he does not consider himself Jewish, so who are we to argue? Yet there she lingers, his Jewish mother…
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 359: obby-F-006.jpg?width=300&quality=85&auto=format&fit=max&s=efb6e20d6212e44e0ebbaa31a60925f0" width="30%" />
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 360: Edesmennyt Bobby muistutti vanhana Kapteeni Kuorttia.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 362: DNA samples taken from US chess champion's corpse that was dug up in Iceland to determine whether he fathered Filipino girl. Bobby Fischer's body exhumed over paternity row. DNA samples taken from US chess champion's corpse that was dug up in Iceland to determine whether he fathered Filipino girl.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 364: Authorities have exhumed the body of US chess champion Bobby Fischer to determine whether he is the father of a nine-year-old girl from the Philippines, according to reports. The broadcaster RÚV claims Fischer's corpse was dug up in a cemetery near Selfoss in southern Iceland yesterday.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 376: "Anti-semitism is no longer a problem. It's raised, but it's raised because privileged people want to make sure they have total control, not just 98% control." — Noam Chomsky
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 393: Ashkenaz (Hebrew: אַשְׁכְּנָז ʾAškənāz) in the Hebrew Bible is one of the descendants of Noah. Ashkenaz is the first son of Gomer, and a Japhetic patriarch in the Table of Nations. In rabbinic literature, the kingdom of Ashkenaz was first associated with the Scythian region, then later with the Slavic territories, and, from the 11th century on, in a manner similar to Tzarfat or Sefarad. Tzarfat (Hebrew: צרפת) is a Biblical placename that may refer to Sarepta in Lebanon. In later times, it came to be identified with France. It is still the name of France in Modern Hebrew, and is analogous to Sefarad, and Ashkenaz. Sepharad (/ˈsɛfəræd/ or /səˈfɛərəd/; Hebrew: סְפָרַד Səpāraḏ; also Sefarad, Sephared, Sfard) is the Hebrew name for Spain. A place called Sepharad, probably referring to Sardis in Lydia ('Sfard' in Lydian), in the Book of Obadiah (Obadiah 1:20, 6th century BC) of the Hebrew Bible. The name was later applied to Spain and is analogous to Tzarfat or Ashkenaz.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 414: ALSO ON 11/9: best-selling Millennium trilogy author Stieg Larsson dies at 50. Jean-Paul Sartre denounces communism 1956. Nazis launch Kristallnacht 1938. TwinTowers come down. Oops that was not 11/9 but 9/11. ("The Lights Went Out In) Massachusetts" is a song by the Bee Gees, written by Barry, Robin & Maurice Gibb and released in 1967. Se oli mun eka ikioma sinkku, sain sen 15-vuotiaana lahjaksi. Sillä ei ollut mitään tekemistä pimennyxen kanssa, BG:t ei olleet edes käyneet Massachusettsissa.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 430: A race riot took place in Harlem, New York City, on August 1 and 2 of 1943, after a white police officer, James Collins, shot and wounded Robert Bandy, an African American soldier; and rumors circulated that the soldier had been killed. The riot was chiefly directed by Black residents against white-owned property in Harlem. It was one of five riots in the nation that year related to Black and white tensions during World War II. The others took place in Detroit; Beaumont, Texas; Mobile, Alabama; and Los Angeles.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 443: The importance of the strike was underlined by a flier handed out by Local 831, which pointed out the life expectancy of a sanitation worker was 54 years compared to 67 for the entire U.S. population. Even today, according to the Federal Bureau of Labor Statistics, “refuse and recyclable material collectors” consistently have one of the highest rates of on-the-job fatalities. Seventeen NYC sanitation workers were killed on the job between 2000 and 2014.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 467: On Feb. 1, two African-American sanitation workers, Echol Cole and Robert Walker, had been crushed to death in one of the city’s outdated trucks. Memphis had no facilities for Black workers to wash up, change clothes or get out of the rain. Cole and Walker were sheltering from the rain inside the truck’s barrel when the compacting mechanism malfunctioned. The truck hadn’t been repaired because the city wouldn’t spend money for safety for these workers.
xxx/ellauri218.html on line 481: The ruling class and the Trump administration are ramping up attacks on public sector workers and unions, the majority of whom are women and people of color. A negative ruling on Janus v. AFSCME, scheduled to be heard by the U.S. Supreme Court on Feb. 26, could strike a financial blow at the ability of public sector unions to collect dues. As racist, sexist right-to-work backers spew their message supporting Janus, the U.S. labor movement is mobilizing resistance to this threat around the country, including a Feb. 24 NYC protest. We are not prepared to accept this assault on our rights without a fight!
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 4:
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 52: Hoblan salvukukon ylistämä "lännen demokraattinen yhteiskuntajärjestys" viittaa porvarilliseen 2-puoluejärjestelmään jolla keski-ja yläluokka yhdessä pitää vuorovedolla rotinkaiset persut populistijohtajineen kurissa sillä aikaa kun kermaperseet kahmii kaiken hyvän izelleen. Ainut vaan et tää kusetus alkaa aika ikävästi rakoilla jo saumoista, kuten esim Trump ja svärjedemokraatit todistavat. Ruozissa on jo tehty uusi Ruozin ennätys hengiltä lasautettujen 20-30 vuotiaiden svarzkallejen lukumäärässä, ja ollaan vasta syyskuun puolella. Kylä lähtee! Ihan ollaan 30-luvun teemoissa. Kokonaisia sukupolvia sotaintoisia nuorukaisia on kasvatettu broilerikanaloissamme, joiden ihan välttämättä täytyy päästä vuorollaan kokeilemaan onneaan. Oolantilaiset sipsiyrittäjät siira-asuisina keekoilevat Hoblan sivuilla.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 76: Dront am Neckar steht a Bänkle, Joggele, mei Bua (I bin Soldat, vallera), M’r muass a faulenze könne, O dees wär schee, i wenn i Geld gnug hätt und Das Hobellied.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 165: Marie Stopes (15. lokakuuta 1880 – 2. lokakuuta 1958) oli brittiläinen paleobiologi, kirjailija ja aktivisti.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 178: He supported eugenics and served as one of 16 vice-presidents of the Eugenics Society from 1909 to 1912. In November 1891, at the age of 32, and reportedly still a virgin, Ellis married the English writer and proponent of women's rights Edith Lees. From the beginning, their marriage was unconventional, as Edith Lees was openly bisexual. At the end of the honeymoon, Ellis went back to his bachelor rooms in Paddington. She lived at Fellowship House. Their "open marriage" was the central subject in Ellis's autobiography, My Life. Ellis reportedly had an affair with Margit Spranger.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 195: Muun muassa Carl Erikin lapsuudentoveri juutalainen Max Jakobson ilmaisee teoksessaan Pelon ja toivon aika suurta arvostusta juutalaista Lippmannia kohtaan.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 201: Kukas ryssä novelisti sanoi nobelisti Salelle että ihmispärstä on maailman ihmeellisin asia? Veikkaan kusitolppa Dostojevskiä.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 349: Checked out a few Saul Bellow books and discovered I have not changed as I have aged. I just don't enjoy his writing, Nobel Prize winner or not. I can still hear his squeaky Donald Duck voice in my head from many interviews he gave here in Chicago and did see him years ago in debates at The Newberry Library Book Fair.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 473: Iloisia uutisia Hoblasta
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 475: Iloisia uutisia Hoblasta: Helsinki laivaa talvilämpimixi käryävää kivihiiltä Australiasta asti. Näin puolustetaan maan energiaomavaraisuutta. Australia on meidän puolella, vaikka maapallon takapuolessa. Ettäkö se kasvattaa hiilijalanjälkeä? Mitä väliä enää maailmanlopusta, nythän on kyse jostain elintärkeämmästä, nimittäin länsiapinoiden reviiristä! Sitäpaizi hiilet tuodaan laivalla, ei siitä jää mereen jalanjälkiä. Valaille voidaan vaikka teettää korvalappuja.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 516: Best friends Fred and Barney awaken with hangovers and no memory of the previous night. Their television is on, showing a program about animals using rubble and flintstones as currency to get food. In the program is a monkey nicknamed Andrew. It's the best actor of the film. Pity it only has a cameo role. Their refrigerator is filled with containers of chocolate pudding, and the answering machine contains an angry message from their twin girlfriends Wilma and Betty as to their whereabouts. The two also learn they have almost been fired from their jobs at the quarry. They emerge from their home to find Fred's car missing, and with it their baby girlfriends' first-anniversary presents. This prompts Fred to ask the film's titular question: "Dude, where's my car?"
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 540: The protectors park the duo's car, a Renault Le Car, behind a mail truck for them to find the following morning. Fred and Barney salvage their relationships with the twins and discover the special treat from the girls turns out to be matching berets with Fred's and Barney's tiny penises embroidered in the front. The protectors, seeing the problem, leave a gift for their girlfriends (and, for the two men): Penis Enhancement Necklaces. The film ends with Fred, Barney, and the twins going out for Chinese food in Fred's car, while arguing about what their tattoos say.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 545: Unettava ilta robottien seurassa
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 572: Pääruoan saapuessa MCCrea vertaa "kevyen ironisesti" itseään natsiarkkitehti Albert Speeriin, joka myös tunsi olevansa tavallisten ihmisten arkisten murheiden yläpuolella. Vähitellen Wall-e alkaa kysymysten sijasta puhua itsekin. Hän kyseenalaistaa McCrean nailonsukista jo vuosia jatkuneen silmäpaon ja jopa väittää tämän tuhlanneen tyhmillä teatteripläjäyxillään vuosia hänen elämästään. McCrea taas on sitä mieltä, että tapoihinsa juuttuminen Wall-en tavalla on pahinta mitä ihminen voi tehdä itselleen. Wall-e mainitsee että hän ja EVE hankkivat hiljattain lämmittävän sähköhuovan, mitä McCrea pitää halvempana pakona kylmästä todellisuudesta kuin hänen omat seikkailunsa lämpimillä leveysasteilla. Wall-e sanoo sähköhuovan voivan auttaa ihmisiä sietämään todellisuutta vähän helpommin kuin McCrean tavalla, kulkemalla ympäri maailmaa oudoissa transuasuissa tai vaikka kiipeämällä Mount Everestille nailonsukat jalassa. Ja niin, se on tuntuvasti halvempi. McCrea suihkaa epäilevänsä, että rahapiirien salaliitto tietoisesti tyhmentää ihmisiä! Hän kertoo tavanneensa yhtä tyhmän ruotsalaisen fyysikon Gustaf Björnstrandin, jolla oli samansuuntaisia ajatuksia. Hän sanoo Einhornin olevan yksi uusimmista luostarien kaltaisista paikoista, joihin ihmiset voivat paeta elämää, joka on tekemässä heistä robotteja. Mutta ilmaista ei sekään ole!
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 576: Miesten odotellessa öljynvaihtoa Wall-e lopulta haluaa kertoa McCrealle mitä todella ajattelee tämän tarinoista ja tavasta elää. Hän sanoo, ettei pohjimmiltaan ymmärrä mistä McCrea oikein puhuu, koska itse nauttii valtavasti pienistä arkisista asioista tavallisessa porvarillisessa elämässään, kuten tyhjien pullojen keruusta roskalaatikoista ja sähköhuovasta. Hän sanoo sellaisten yhteisöjen, joissa McCrea on elänyt, olevan suunniteltu ihmisille jotka haluavat kokea täydellisen tarkoituksettomuuden kalliimmalla hinnalla. McCrea puolustautuu sanomalla, että valtaosa ihmisistä pakenee tällästä älyllistä byssötystä työhön, tylsään parisuhteeseen tai mihin hyvänsä olosuhteisiin jossa voivat toimia kuin robotit. Hyvästä syystäkin.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 580: Miehet jatkavat pahansuopaa väittelyään elämän suurista kysymyksistä, kunnes huomaavat ravintolan tyhjentyneen muista asiakkaista, jotka nähtävästi ottivat jalat allensa mieluummin kuin tunkivat persiljaa korviin päästäxeen kuulemasta robottikaxikkomme kaikuvia paasauxia. McCrea menestyneempänä maksaa laskun, ja Wall-e ajaa pommilla maanalaisella kotiin. Kertojanäänellään hän sanoo tavanneensa kotona EVEn ja telakoituneensa siihen heti sähköhuovan alla.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 592: "Ralph" Nader oli Yhdysvaltain vihreän puolueen presidenttiehdokkaana vuosien 1996 ja 2000 vaaleissa, molempina kertoina varapresidenttiehdokkaanaan Winona LaDuke. Vuonna 2004 vihreä puolue nimitti ehdokkaakseen David Cobbin ja Nader oli sitoutumattomana ehdokkaana. Myös vuoden 2008 vaaleissa Nader oli ehdolla sitoutumattomana.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 611: Condit, who has written a book on his experience, is now living in Arizona and working various odd jobs, including at one point owning Baskin-Robbins franchises.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 617: Despite his denials, Gary’s ties to Chandra’s case ultimately caused his political career to crumble. In 2002, he lost his house seat — just mere weeks after Chandra’s remains were discovered in Washington, D.C.’s Rock Creek Park. Gary then moved to Arizona, where he opened several Baskin-Robbins stores. However, his venture in the ice cream business was cut short in 2012, when his franchises reportedly closed.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 622: Isä/äiti/omaishoitaja/muu kamu meidän (Jumala/Jahve/Buddha/Birgit/Bob/Ei kukaan), joka kenties olet taivaassa! Me pyydämme sinulta, laupias Luoja, lohtua niille, jotka ovat joutuneet kärsimään joko Sinun, luontoäidin tai Maailmanpankin takia. Me ymmärrämme, Herra/Rouva/Neiti/Muu, ettet voi parantaa kaikkia sairaita kerralla, silla se tyhjentäisi epäilemättä kaikki sairaalat, jotka nunnat ovat perustaneet Sinun nimessäsi. Me hyväksymme sen ettet Sinä, Kaikkivaltias, voi poistaa maailmasta kaikkea pahaa sillä silloin Sinä ize joutuisit epäilemättä hyllylle.
xxx/ellauri224.html on line 625: Taivaallinen huoltaja, me rukoilemme, että kaikki valkoihoiset johtajat (varsinkin Bob Jones-yliopiston entiset opiskelijat), jotka uskovat että mustilla menee nykyään hyvin, heräävat huomenaamulla mustina kuin limusiinin pinta, jotta he voivat nauttia mustien yltäkylläisestä elämästä. Me pyydämme nöyrimmin, että Sinun voideltujasi, Pyhän roomalaiskatolisen kirkon piispoja rangaistaisiin munasarjoilla ja odottamattomilla raskauksilla ja "varmoista päivistä" kertovalla monisteella.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 4:
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 44: The general gist is that humans originally spread throughout the galaxy from a planet called Hain. The Hainish colonies (including Earth) all eventually lost contact with and then memory of each other; each book or story then shows a planet at or shortly after the moment when contact is re-established. It’s a useful way to frame the classic sociological sci-fi writing that Le Guin is known for—an Envoy or Observer from the slowly burgeoning coalition of planets can arrive at a completely new human society, which Le Guin can then use to dissect and explore some facet of real life through speculative worldbuilding. And the best part of it is that unless Darwin got his hairy foot into it, all the Hainians got fully interlocking genitals! One of the biggest obstacles to enjoyable alien sex is overcome.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 50: Content Warnings: homophobia, suicide
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 76: Juu tuttuja on naapureiden jumppaeleet: veto ulos, työntö sisään, ojennus, rentoutus. Ikäänkuin niihin sisältyisi jokin merkitys. Meduusamaiset anaerobiset harjoituxet päättyvät pihavalvojan väliintuloon.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 107: Mistäs nää Ursulan "hainit" tulevat? Perhaps the Middle English word heyne (and its variants, such as haine, hayn ), meaning 'mean wretch, niggard'? Tai Robert Heinlein — aus einer Koseform von Heinrich entstandener Familienname? Ach nein, nö! Heine: Dieser Name leitet sich vom hebräischen Wort für das Leben ab.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 143: In 1754, a naturalist named Charles Bonnet observed that plants sprout branches and leaves in a pattern, called phyllotaxis. Bonnet saw that tree branches and leaves had a mathematical spiral pattern that could be shown as a fraction. The amazing thing is that the mathematical fractions were the same numbers as the Fibonacci sequence! On the oak tree, the Fibonacci fraction is 2/5, which means that the spiral takes five branches to spiral two times around the trunk to complete one pattern. Other trees with the Fibonacci leaf arrangement are the elm tree (1/2); the beech (1/3); the willow (3/8) and the almond tree (5/13) (Livio, Adler).
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 145: I learned that making power from the Sun is not easy. I began to see how nature beat this problem. Collecting sunlight is key to the survival of a tree. Leaves are the solar panels of trees, collecting sunlight for photosynthesis. Collecting the most sunlight is the difference between life and death. Trees in a forest are competing with other trees and plants for sunlight, and even each branch and leaf on a tree are competing with each other for sunlight. Evolution chose the Fibonacci pattern to help trees track the Sun moving in the sky and to collect the most sunlight even in the thickest forest.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 147: I saw patterns that showed that the tree design avoided the problem of shade from other objects. Electricity dropped in the flat-panel array when shade fell on it. But the tree design kept making electricity under the same conditions. The Fibonacci pattern allowed some solar panels to collect sunlight even if others were in shade. Plus I observed that the Fibonacci pattern helped the branches and leaves on a tree to avoid shading each other.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 149: My conclusions suggest that the Fibonacci pattern in trees makes an evolutionary difference. This is probably why the Fibonacci pattern is found in deciduous trees living in higher latitudes. The Fibonacci pattern gives plants like the oak tree a competitive edge over solar panels while collecting sunlight when the Sun moves through the sky.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 200: No mutta mitä helvettiä? Nythän tää avainromaani eeku selkenee! Kiltit ekumeenit eli länkkärit lähettivät ennen sotia kilttejä lähettejä Kiinaan tekemään kristillistä käännytystyötä, mut sit tulivat pahat unistit eli ryssät pilaamaan koko sopan ja usuttivat kiinalaiset pitkälle marssille kohti punaista tähteä. Kunnes sittemmin Jelzin Dalzulina käänsi nudnistiryssän kelkan ja historia lakkasi kuten Fukuyama ennusti, kauppa alkoi käydä globaalisti ja kaikista tuli kapitalisteja. Mitä nyt mumslimifundamentalistit pörräsivät terroristeina ja tapattivat epähuomiossa jenkkipörriäisellä Smuttyn panopuun Paon. Okei! Smutty on siis vapaalla jalalla!
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 267: Le Guin read both classic and speculative fiction widely in her youth. She later said that science fiction did not have much impact on her until she read the works of Theodore Sturgeon and Cordwainer Smith, and that she had sneered at the genre as a child. Authors Le Guin describes as influential include Victor Hugo, William Wordsworth, Charles Dickens, Boris Pasternak, and Philip K. Dick. Le Guin and Dick attended the same high-school, but did not know each other. She also considered J. R. R. Tolkien and Leo Tolstoy to be stylistic influences, and preferred reading Virginia Woolf and Jorge Luis Borges to well-known science-fiction authors such as Robert Heinlein, whose writing she described as being of the "white man conquers the universe" tradition. Several scholars state that the influence of mythology, which Le Guin enjoyed reading as a child, is also visible in much of her work: for example, the short story "The Dowry of Angyar" is described as a retelling of a Norse myth.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 275: Although Le Guin is primarily known for her works of speculative fiction, she also wrote realistic fiction, non-fiction, poetry, and several other literary forms, which makes her work quite difficult for librarians to classify. Her writings received critical attention from mainstream critics, critics of children´s literature, and critics of speculative fiction. Le Guin herself said that she would prefer to be known as an "American novelist". Le Guin´s transgression of conventional boundaries of genre led to literary criticism of Le Guin becoming "Balkanized", particularly between scholars of children´s literature and speculative fiction. Commentators have noted that the Earthsea novels specifically received less critical attention because they were considered children´s books. Le Guin herself took exception to this treatment of children´s literature, describing it as "adult chauvinist piggery". In 1976, literature scholar George Slusser criticized the "silly publication classification designating the original series as 'children's literature'", while in Barbara Bucknall´s opinion Le Guin "can be read, like Tolkien, by ten-year-olds and by adults. These stories are ageless because they deal with problems that beset us at any age."
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 279: Cette construction littéraire a été décrite pour la première fois par le linguiste Adolf Tobler, en 1887. Il l´a découverte en étudiant les écrits de Zola et Flaubert. Un autre linguiste, Charles Bally, lui donna en 1912 un nom et l´appela « style indirect libre », et ce n´est que plus tard, que peu à peu, style devint discours, car cette forme vise à restituer une parole, et est donc plus proche du discours que du style.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 281: A number of Le Guin´s writings, including the Earthsea series, challenged the conventions of epic fantasies and myths. Many of the protagonists in Earthsea were dark-skinned individuals, in comparison to the white-skinned heroes more traditionally used; some of the antagonists, in contrast, were white-skinned, a switching of race roles that has been critically remarked upon by multiple critics. In a 2001 interview, Le Guin attributed the frequent lack of character illustrations on her book covers to her choice of non-white protagonists. LOL haha! She explained this choice, saying: "most people in the world aren't white. Why in the future would we assume they are?" Her 1985 book Always Coming Home, described as "her great experiment", included a story told from the perspective of a young protagonist, but also included poems, rough drawings of plants and animals, myths, and anthropological reports from the matriarchal society of the Kesh, a fictional people living in the Napa valley after a catastrophic global flood.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 300: Each volume of Anals of the Western Shore also describes the coming of age of its protagonists, and features explorations of being enslaved to one´s own power. The process of growing up is depicted as seeing beyond narrow choices the protagonists are presented with by society. In Gifts, Orrec and Gry realize that the powers their people possess can be used in two ways: for control and dominion, or for healing and nurturing. Which will it be? This recognition allows them to take a third choice, viz. make like a tree and leave. This wrestling with choice has been compared to the choices the characters are forced to make in Le Guin´s short story "The Ones Who Walk Away from Omelas". Similarly, Ged helps Tenar in The Tombs of Atuan to value herself and to find choices that she did not see, leading her to leave the Tombs with him. But remember, Le Guin never left Portland where her wimpy husband could barely hold a teaching job.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 353: In his newest book, “Possessed by Memory: The Inward Light of Criticism,” Bloom promised to shake off the polemical battles that have shadowed him for years. He pledged to include never-revealed autobiographical snippets. He wanted to share with his readers his recent reevaluations of some of his most beloved writers. He only partially delivers.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 357: There are stunning passages from literature that have moved him for decades. There is poetry, prose, and criticism from John Milton, Dr. Samuel Johnson, Phil Collins, Thomas Gray, Blake, Wordsworth, Coleridge, Shelley, Keats, Tennyson, Browning, Swinburn, Elizabeth Bishop, John Ashbery and James Merrill Hintikka. Bloom meditates on the Hebrew prophets, the Kabbalah, Psalms, Job, the Song of Songs, and Ecclesiastes. And of course, his beloved Shakespeare.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 359: But Bloom’s insights don’t resonate deeply. He is too obsessed with comparing and contrasting, rather than allowing his responses to touch us deeply. He repeats his theory that poets always wrestle with the work of the poets that have come before them, either unconsciously or consciously, and then struggle to find their own voice in reaction to what has come before. There is something anti-transformative about his assertions, often tangled up with incomprehensible jargon.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 372: About Shakespeare, however, Bloom is nothing short of reverential: “My religion is the appreciation of high literature. Shakespeare is the summit. Revelation for me is Shakespearean or nothing.” He admits that much about the Bard still bewilders him. In a moment of rare vulnerability, Bloom admits he longs for more life. Bloom explains his theory of “self-otherseeing,” which allows one to glimpse parts of one’s self that are hidden from conscious view. “Self-otherseeing” also describes “the double-consciousness of observing our own actions and offerings as though they belong to others and not to ourselves.” Bloom insists that Shakespeare’s characterizations of Hamlet, Iago, Cleopatra and Falstaff use “self-othering,” and by watching them we inadvertently learn to think more seriously about ourselves. But he doesn’t show us how this has applied to him, only the declaration that it does so. We are left mystified and dubious.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 384: Provoked and inspired by T. S. Eliot, Crane wrote modernist poetry that was difficult, highly stylized, and ambitious in its scope. In his most ambitious work, The Bridge, Crane sought to write an epic poem, in the vein of The Waste Land, that expressed a more optimistic view of modern, urban culture than the one that he found in Eliot´s work. But he FAILED! In the years following his suicide at the age of 32, Crane has been hailed by playwrights, poets, and literary critics alike (including Robert Lowell, Derek Walcott, Tennessee Williams, and Harold Bloom), as being one of the most influential poets of his generation.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 388: Crane´s mother and father were constantly fighting, and they divorced early in April 1917. Crane dropped out of East High School in Cleveland during his junior year and left for New York City, promising his parents he would attend Columbia University later. His parents, in the middle of their divorce proceedings, were upset. Crane took various copywriting jobs and moved between friends´ apartments in Manhattan. Between 1917 and 1924 he moved back and forth between New York and Cleveland, working as an advertising copywriter and a worker in his father´s factory. From Crane´s letters, it appears that New York was where he felt most at home, and much of his poetry is set there.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 394: Crane returned to New York in 1928, living with friends and taking temporary jobs as a copywriter, or living off unemployment and the charity of friends and his father. For a time he lived in Brooklyn at 77 Willow Street until his lover, Opffer, invited him to live in Opffer´s father´s home at 110 Columbia Heights in Brooklyn Heights. Crane was overjoyed at the views the location afforded him. He wrote his mother and grandmother in the spring of 1924:
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 402: Crane found a place to start his synthesis in Brooklyn. Arts patron Otto H. Kahn gave him $2,000 to begin work on the epic poem. When he wore out his welcome at the Opffers´, Crane left for Paris in early 1929, but failed to leave his personal problems behind. His drinking, always a problem, became notably worse during the late 1920s, while he was finishing The Bridge. Loppuajat se vietti pääasiassa sillan alla.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 416: Recent criticism has suggested reading Crane´s poems—"The Broken Tower", "My Grandmother´s Love Letters", the "Voyages" series, and others—with an eye to homosexual meanings in the text. Queer theorist Tim Dean argues, for instance, that the obscurity of Crane´s style owes partially to the necessities of being a semi-public homosexual—not quite closeted, but also, as legally and culturally necessary, not open: "The intensity responsible for Crane´s particular form of difficulty involves not only linguistic considerations but also culturally subjective concerns. This intensity produces a kind of privacy that is comprehensible in terms of the cultural construction of homosexuality and its attendant institutions of privacy."
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 418: Thomas Yingling objects to the traditional, New Critical and Eliotic readings of Crane, arguing that the "American myth criticism and formalist readings" have "depolarized and normalized our reading of American poetry, making any homosexual readings seem perverse." Thomas E. Yingling was associate professor of English at Syracuse University until his death from AIDS-related causes in 1992. Even more than a personal or political problem, though, Yingling argues that such "biases" obscure much of what the poems make clear; he cites, for instance, the last lines of "My Grandmother´s Love Letters" from White Buildings as a haunting description of estrangement from the norms of (heterosexual) family life:
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 429: Important mid-century American poets, such as John Berryman and Robert Lowell, cited Crane as a significant influence. Both poets also wrote about Crane in their poetry. Berryman wrote him one of his famous elegies in The Dream Songs, and Lowell published his "Words for Hart Crane" in Life Studies (1959): "Who asks for me, the Shelley of my age, / must lay his heart out for my bed and board." Lowell thought that Crane was the most important American poet of the generation to come of age in the 1920s, stating that "[Crane] got out more than anybody else ... he somehow got New York City (though an Ohio hick); he was at the center of things in the way that no other poet was." Lowell also described Crane as being "less limited than any other poet of his generation." Talk to the hand, they were both abysmal FAILURES!
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 436: Staffanin poikamieskirjat muistuttavat paljon Dan Steinbokin Andromeedaa. Samanlaista androgeenistä pullistelua Hoblan perinteisiltä rappuunjakelualueilta. Minäkin olen distribuoinut Hoblaa kevätaamulla 1983 Brunnsparkenin kermaperseille isopyöräisillä kärryillä. Alla tämän torstaipäivän ozikoita Hoblasta:
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 440: I en problemtyngd samtid är det viktigare än någonsin att upprätthålla moralen och framtidstron, men det finns en risk att propagerandet för hopp och andra fina värderingar blir ett sätt att upprätthålla de orättvisor vi låtsas vara emot, påstår författaren Pereira.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 444: Hoblan ex-toimittajan Staffanin suomentaja on se sama ozatukkainen Seppo Hyrkäs vainaja jota lytättiin albumissa 28. Sen mielestä Kurt Cobain sanoisi "eri hienoa". Sanoikohan se myös "älkää olko hooboja". Saattoihan se sanoakin, Stafu on Pezkun ikäinen.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 480: Ehkä ryssät panostivat Itämeren kaasulinjan Nobelin dynamiittipötköillä jo rakennettaessa juuri tämmöisiä kriisitilanteita varten. Linja sopii räjäyttää näin talven tullen vastavetona länkkäreiden yltyvälle sotainnolle ja nälistyxelle. Saavatpahan tuta keski-Euroopassa miten vetää nenättien bajamajoissa. Ukrainan selkkaus yllätti lännen aseteollisuuden housut nilkoissa. Kohta ei riitä länkkäreillä pateja edes omaan tarpeeseen. Ja silloin uhkaa Kiina tehdä Plopovin izemurhasiirron USAn selän takana ja miehittää lopultakin valkoisen generalissimo Ziang Kai Shekin pakosaaren Formosan. Jännä miten tämäkin kaveri on tyystin häivytetty Wikipedian Taiwanin historiaosiosta. Siellä vaan hoetaan ettei kiinalaisia ole ollut Formosalla kuin 300 vuotta ja että se oli länkkäreillä ennen sitä. No eipä jenkit ole senkään aikaa pitäneet länsi-inkkareilta ryöväämäänsä brittisiirtomaata hallussaan. Wikipediaan ei ole luottamista kun jenkki-intressit on vaakalaudalla.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 492: EU:n elokuvaviraston johtaja Bo Jönsson ois niikö ex vasemmistoaktivisti joka vastustaa NATOa. Eikä vaan sitä, vaan se teki aloitteita pankkien kansallistamisesta, pornon kieltämisestä sekä vegeravintoloiden tukemisesta. Jönsson puolusti johdonmukaisesti sosialistisia ihanteita ja pehmeitä arvoja. Hän kannatti reilua kauppaa, raittiusaatetta sekä vegetarismia ja vastusti globalisaatiota, suuryrityksiä sekä yksityisautoilua. Edusti kaikkea siitä mikä Staffania aivan erityisesti kismittää. Hizi eipä ihme että tää läpyskä vaikutti musta alusta alkaen niin paskalta. Staffan on pystyyn ostettu lortti, en paremmin sano. No se onkin entinen Hoblan toimittaja.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 494: Bruun, Staffan Felix (f. 8/11 1955 Hfrs), journalist och författare, son till Kettil Bruun. Anställd vid Hufvudstadsbladet från 1980, där han framför allt profilerat sig som ettrig och orädd reporter. Tidningens redaktionschef 1995-97. Som författare har Bruun främst ägnat sig åt Kille Kimalainen där hans hjälte, den frifräsande journalisten Burt Kobbat, har klart skönjbara drag av sin författare.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 500: "Disney vie asian maailmankauppajärjestöön" - just tätä vittu globalisaatio teettää: monikansalliset firmat toimii kansojen ylituomarina. Voi vittujen vittu! Tuokaa kamelinajajat lisää lentopommeja ja kaatakaa loputkin WTC:n ja jättifirmojen pilvenpiirtäjät! Staffan on Olli Rehn myönteinen, mikä ei kaiken jälkeen yhtään yllätä. "Nyt teidän on suotava anteexi, tärkeä kokous odottaa." Juurikin näin sanoi Burt runkmannille joka tuli häiritsemään Kille Kimalaisen viittä pistoa. Saablari ollaan tuskin kirjan puolessavälissä ja se on alkanut jo vastustamattomasti etoa. Kyllä tässä on edessä melkoinen kauhominen paskavellissä ennenkuin ollaan takakannessa.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 504: Kurt Bobcatin Kille Kimalainen lentää freedom fighterinä Irakiin. Se on Staffanista nähtävästi hienoa, kuin myös Disney ja amerikkalaisuus yleensä. Kasvisruoka sensijaan on siitä pyllystä. Staffanin selkäranka pitäis potkasta sen hattuun. Mixi kaikenlaiset hölmöt tyhjäntoimittajat kynäilee näitä vitun dekkareita ja "trillereitä", jotka ei kelpaa edes pyllyn pyyhkimixi? No koska vielä tolvanammat perskärpäset ja kumikaulat ostaa ja lukee niitä.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 585: Hahah tää kohta oli ainut tähän asti naurattanut, missä neuvostovakoojat veti turpaan Kobbattia niin että hampaat helisivät. Lisää samaa ja isommat lusikat! Olisivat ampuneet sitä muniin niinkuin meinasivat!
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 587: Aika typerä kekka, numero 819 on toisin päin 618. Kylläpä on nokkelaa. Kyllä ryssät on sitten tyhmiä. Vaan niin on Burt Kobbatkin. Kaikki
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 596: - Siperia opettaa on Staffan Bruunin kahdeksas Burt Kobbat seikkailu. Edellinen, Pizza al-Qaida, ilmestyi vuonna 2004.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 645: 2021 var det 90 år sedan svensk militär i Ådalen med gevär och kulsprutor dödligt besköt ett demonstationståg med 3-4000 obeväpnade medborgare.
xxx/ellauri225.html on line 669: Elokuvassa seurataan toukokuun 1931 tapahtumia nuoren Kjellin kautta. Hän soittaa nahkaklarinettia paikallisessa työväen soittokunnassa ja haaveilee jazzmuusikon urasta. Hän "ihastuu" tehtaanjohtajan tyttäreen Annaan, joka "tulee" raskaaksi. Elokuva oli ehdolla vuoden parhaaksi vieraskieliseksi elokuvaksi sekä Oscar-palkintogaalassa että Golden Globessa. Voiton vei kuitenkin molemmissa Costa-Gavrasin poliittinen trilleri Z – hän elää!. No voi helevetti. Ojentiko Roger Moore pokaalin?
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 39: Yönä muutamana tässä mietin (kun en saanut unta mahanpuruilta), mitkä lienevät tärkeimmät erot bestsellerien ja Nobel-palkittujen välillä. Sillä aika harvat nobelisteista on bestsellereitä (luulisin, en ole laskenut), ja vielä harvemmat bestsellereistä ovat nobelisteja. Siis mitä on toisissa ja puuttuu toisista, niin että niiden lukijakunnat ovat niin erilaisia?
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 43: Onhan nobelisteillakin näitä kaikkia, mutta pitoisuus on alhaisempi, kun pitää laittaa soppaan myös tuju määrä ihmis- ym. luonnonkuvausta ja sivellä päälle paxulti kirjallisia alluusioita. Niinkuin esim. "puunaama". Niillä pidetään yllä laahuxeen hajurakoa.
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 89: Läckberg on ollut perustamassa Nobel-palkinnolle kilpailijaa, jonka jakaa Uusi akatemia, Den Nya Akademien, johon on liittynyt noin sata kulttuurialojen edustajaa. Ne eivät kyllä jaa yhtä paljon rahaa. Palkinto jaetaan 10. joulukuuta, kuten Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkintokin on jaettu. Varjopalkinnon nettiosoite https://dennyaakademien.com/
vie sivulle "Hello world": Welcome to Wordpress. This is your first post. Edit or delete it, then start writing! With any luck you may be our next Shadow Nobel Prize winner!
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 109: Skuggnobel-stiftelsen bildades 2011 av Tak-Idas sångare Robert Pettersson och barndomskamraten Micke Eriksson. Medlemmarna är fortfarande desamma, liksom det grundläggande konceptet: att sjunga ärliga svenska texter och att inte krångla till det i onödan, utan lita på låtarnas inneboende styrka. Vart jag än går är en sång inspelad av Stiftelsen 2012. År 2013 vann den en Grammis för "Årets låt 2012". Singeln ”Vart jag än går” är i dag tio gånger platina och har streamats över 50 miljoner gånger. Totalt har Stiftelsen streamats 170 miljoner gånger, det mesta av en och samma ensam man. Deras musik är lika inspirerande som denna bild av ett våningshus.
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 140: Alice Ingegärd Marianne Timander, född Müller den 6 oktober 1915 i Stockholm, död 3 juli 2007 i Stockholm, var en svensk tandläkare, skådespelerska och underhållare. Hon är framförallt känd för sin närvaro på otaliga premiärer.
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 156: Ann Rae Rule (née Stackhouse; October 22, 1931 – July 26, 2015) was an American author of true crime books and articles. She is best known for The Stranger Beside Me (1980), about the serial killer Al Bundy, with whom Rule worked and whom she considered a friend, but was later revealed to be a murderer. Rule is also known for her book Small Sacrifices, about Oregon child murderer Diane Downs. Many of Rule's books center on murder cases that occurred in the Pacific Northwest and her adopted home state of Washington.
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 165: Camilla Läckberg har sammantaget sålt 28 miljoner böcker världen över. Hon har skrivit 10 deckare i Fjällbacka-serien; två om jetset-kvinnan Faye, 10 barnböcker samt två kokböcker. Hon jobbar nu på en thriller-trilogi tillsammans med mental case Henrik Fexéus.
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 196: – Jag tror att det finns ett sug efter såpor. Att komma på idéer, karaktärer och bygga upp världar har aldrig varit ett problem för mig. Att få göra en såpa är något jag drömt om i över tio år och jag lovar att den innehåller allt, maktkamp, förbjuden kärlek, pengar och så lite mord också naturligtvis. Kolla bara teasern härnere.
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 224: Nordkorea sköt en robot över Hokkaido men missade. Japanerna sket i byxorna. Vapentesterna har ökat i takt med att Sydkorea, Japan och USA ökat sina gemensamma militärövningar.
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 351: Selma lever, enligt vissa, ovanligt öppet i sina relationer med kvinnor. I huset Mårbacka bor också Valborg Olander, och på sina resor kan Selma och Sofie Elkan bo i samma rum. Oavsett Olander eller Elkans sexualitet, så betvivlar jag inte för en sekund att Lagerlöf var lesbisk. Men varför är det så viktigt att låta detta vara obekräftat i den litterära sfären?
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 353: Selma Lagerlöf är en av Sveriges mest kända författare. Hon är översatt och bearbetad över hela världen. I och med detta måste en viss “respekt” hållas. Att outa Lagerlöf som lesbisk skulle, enligt dagens normer, inte se bra ut för den svenska delen av världshistorien. Samtidigt som det skulle se så bra ut för den svenska lesbiskheten. Breven mellan Elkan och Lagerlöf hölls i det dolda i femtio år, innan de tilläts öppna på KB i Stockholm. Kanske fanns en tro att deras kärlek, Lagerlöfs begär och åtrå, skulle få komma upp i ljuset. Kanske hade de båda hoppats på att den obligatoriska heterosexualiteten skulle göra deras brev mer orättvisa, än att det på håll sagts, “människor skrev ju sådär till varandra på den tiden.”
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 368: Förrädaren Åke-Håkan Isaksson drack för mycket, han verkade bitter. Han berättade om det hemliga jobb som han precis fått sparken från efter misstankar om stöld av blyertspennor och klämmare.
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 469: obile-brigit.jpg" height="400px" />
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 470: obile100429076/8262506367-ci102l-w1024/Liza-Marklund-DW-Kultur-Helsinki-jpg.jpg" height="400px" />
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 554: Kerstin Anita Marianne Ekberg (29. syyskuuta 1931 Malmö – 11. tammikuuta 2015 Rooma, Italia) oli ruotsalainen malli, näyttelijä ja sexisymboli. Anita Ekberg aloitti uransa mallina ja osallistui muun muassa 1951 Miss Universe -kilpailuun, jonka ansiosta yhdysvaltalaiset elokuvastudiot kiinnostuivat hänestä. Anita ei tullut valituxi Miss Universexi, eikä vottajaa löydy mistään. Kilpailusta tuli virallinen vasta synnyinvuonnani 1952, jolloin universumin kauneimmaxi kruunattiin meidän oma 17-kesäinen Armi Kuuselamme. Ekberg näytteli useissa Hollywood-elokuvissa ja sai muun muassa Golden Globe -palkinnon sivuroolistaan elokuvassa Blood Alley 1955 vastanäyttelijänään John Wayne. Varsinaisen legendan hänestä tekivät eurooppalaiset elokuvat ja etenkin naisrooli Federico Fellinin elokuvassa Ihana elämä (La Dolce Vita, 1960), jonka suihkulähdekohtaus on jäänyt osaksi länsimaista pehmopornografiaa. Ihanan elämän jälkeen Ekberg esiintyi enemp vähemp nakupellenä useissa italialaisissa elokuvissa. Anitalla oli aivan jättimäiset kannut mutta vähän tyly suu.
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 573: Pitäs varmaan kazoa sensijaan joku "Jami" video. No kazottiin sensijaan "Sofia Karppi" jämäri, kokonaan suometettu sveduilta huolella apinoitu nuaaripläjäys. Kävi ilmi että stadissakin on yöllä pimeää, on äveriäitä sijoittajia jobsinnäkösessä turtlenekissä ja välttämätön token apuneekeri, silverbäk pomo poliisi (ei sentään ämmä Suomessa, paizi Raidissa), kilpailua tiimissä, ikäviä perheoloja, puukon kanssa heiluvia sekakäyttäjiä, sähläystä pyssy tanassa rönttöisissä kulisseissa, you name it. Pääosan esittäjä kähmi Anni Sinnemäen avustuksella izelleen kivitalon Meilahdesta. Ei kyllä tässä olis poliisille töitä hemmetti. "Arabialaisen kädenpuristuxen" tunisialainen romukauppias sanoi että tunisialaiset miehet ovat huolissaan globalisaatiosta: länkkärihapatuxen fölissä menee tuniisien perinteinen kulttuuri. Niinpä näyttää menevän Suomenkin, kiitos "Sofia Karppi" tyyppisten angloviihteen päälleäänitysten. Raid, tule takaisin!
xxx/ellauri227.html on line 613: Det som mest upptar författarens intresse och läsarens tid är istället just de här beskrivningarna och diskussionerna. Men här handlar det inte om ubåtar och säkerhetspolitik, utan istället om klosterliv, teologi, jordbruksteknik och medeltida kokkonst. Guillous skriver med sinnlighet om mat, musik, hästar och, givetvis, jakt. Det är nytt, det är oväntat och det är faktiskt riktigt bra. (Han har dock ännu vissa problem med sina kärleksscener, dom är alltför lapidariska.)
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 275: Tumpelo puolalainen runoilija ja Nobel-palkittu Czesław Milosz kommentoi tätä erityistä lähestymistavan eroa: "Tarkovskille tärkein asia on maa", jonka hän "täyttää hengellisellä merkityksellä", erityisesti monet sateeseen liittyvät kohtaukset, jotka venäläisessä kulttuurissa Miloszin mielestä "edustavat Pyhää Henkeä". Mitosz näkee tyypillisesti venäläisenä hengellisen merkityksen ja mystiikan lisäämisen maanpäällisiin kuviin.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 284: Maanpäällisen luonnon nostalgia jatkuu avaruusasemalla. Aseman karu, steriili, metallinen sisustus on kylmä ja klaustrofobinen, täynnä teknisiä varusteita ja alkeellisinta ja toimivinta kalustetta; mutta ajoittain kohtaus Maasta ilmestyy, ei vain takaumissa, vaan myös kehystetyn maiseman painatuksen muodossa, valokuvana koirista, jotka makaavat ruohossa, ristiriitaisina avaruusaseman ympäristössä, mutta muistuttavat katsojaa siitä, kuinka kaukana Kelvin ja miehistö ovat luonnollisesta kodistaan. Yhdessä synkemmistä kohtauksista muistutus maasta ja vihje miehistön mahdollisesta tilanteesta on portholen takana ohi liitävä Laika-koiran koppi.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 343: Andrei´s paternal grandfather Aleksandr Karlovich Tarkovsky (in Polish: Aleksander Karol Tarkowski) was a Polish nobleman who worked as a bank clerk. His wife Maria Danilovna Rachkovskaya was a Romanian language teacher who arrived from Iași. Andrei´s maternal grandmother Vera Nikolayevna Vishnyakova (née Dubasova) belonged to an old Dubasov family of Russian nobility that traces its history back to the 17th century; among her relatives was Admiral Fyodor Dubasov, a fact she had to conceal during the Soviet days. She was married to Ivan Ivanovich Vishnyakov, a native of the Kaluga Governorate who studied law at the Moscow State University and served as a judge in Kozelsk.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 349: From 1973 to 1974, he shot the film Zerkalo, a highly autobiographical and unconventionally structured film drawing on his childhood and incorporating some of his father´s poems. In this film Tarkovsky portrayed the plight of childhood affected by war. Tarkovsky had worked on the screenplay for this film since 1967, under the consecutive titles Confession, White day and A white, white day. From the beginning the film was not well received by Soviet authorities due to its content and its perceived elitist nature. Such third rate films also placed the film-makers in danger of being accused of wasting public funds, which could have serious effects on their future productivity. These difficulties are presumed to have made Tarkovsky play with the idea of going abroad and producing a film outside the Soviet film industry.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 356: in the making-of documentary Directed by Andrei Tarkovsky, in a particularly poignant scene, writer/director Michal Leszczylowski follows Tarkovsky on a walk as he expresses his sentiments on death—he claims himself to be immortal and has no fear of dying. Ironically, at the end of the year Tarkovsky was diagnosed with terminal lung cancer. Shouldn´t have smoked so much bad-tasting Belomore. In his last diary entry (15 December 1986), Andrei wrote: "But now I have no strength left—that is the problem". Eli vuoden ehti nauttia lännen vapaudesta.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 434: Tugged me, like a thread, around the globe. Kiskoi minua, kuin lankaa, pallon ympäri.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 532: TV Reality, Robinsoniads and sundry Parsonses
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 534: Robinson Crusoe on Daniel Defoen ensimmäinen ja kuuluisin romaani. Teos julkaistiin vuonna 1719. Romaani oli myyntimenestys jo omana aikanaan, ja sitä on kutsuttu maailman ensimmäiseksi bestselleriksi. Teoksen mukaan on saanut nimensä kokonainen kirjallisuuden laji, robinsonadit (Selviytyjät), alias bestsellerit (myyntimenestyxet)..
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 536: Kirjan ensimmäinen suomenkielinen versio ilmestyi jo 1847 Otto Tandefeltin suomentamana mukaelmana, nimellä Robinpoika Kruuse. Vuonna 1961 julkaistun mukaelman maahantuonti ja levittäminen kiellettiin nk. Kynäbaari-jutussa. Kynäbaari-juttu (myös Liisa ihmemaassa -tapaus) on ollut ainut kerta, jolloin tekijänoikeuslain klassikkosuojapykälää on sovellettu käytäntöön Suomessa. Asia ratkaistiin korkeimman oikeuden ennakkopäätöksellä vuonna 1967 (KKO 1967-II-10). Opetusministeriö päätti 11. toukokuuta 1962 kieltää kyseisten kirjojen maahantuonnin ja levittämisen Suomessa. Menettely perustui tuoreen tekijänoikeuslain 53 §:ään, jossa mainitaan sivistyksellisten arvojen vaarantaminen: teoksia ei saa muunnella tekijän kuoltua tavalla, joka on omiaan halventamaan tekijää.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 538: Heinäkuussa 1962 Helle Kannila kirjoitti Suomen Kuvalehteen ja vastusti Luxus-sarjan kieltämistä. Hänen mukaansa siinä taisteltiin huulimyllyjä vastaan. Kynäbaari esitti professori T. M. Kynämäen lausunnon, jonka mukaan Defoen sepustamat satukirjat tuskin kuuluvat maailmankirjallisuuden suurteoksiin. Kynämäki edusti puolueensa oikeaa siipeä ja hänen poliittinen linjansa voidaan nähdä oikeistoliberaalisena. Kynämäki toimi Suomen Berliinin-lähettiläänä välirauhan ja jatkosodan aikana 1940–1944. Hän oli yksi sotasyyllisyysoikeudenkäynnissä syytetyistä ja tuomituista, ja istui sen vuoksi ansiosta vankilassa vuosina lukemassa tiilenpäitä 1946–1948. Vaikka Kivimäkeä, vaikka Kivimäkeä, nuijikaamme yhdessä. Ministeriön kieltopäätös pysytettiin voimassa, lukuun ottamatta Robin Hoodia, jonka kuolemasta ei ollut saatu selvitystä.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 540: Kirjan koko alkukielinen nimi kuuluu: The Life and Strange Surprising Adventures of Robinson Crusoe of York, Mariner: who lived Eight and Twenty Years, all alone in an uninhabited Island on the coast of America, near the Mouth of the Great River of Oroonoque; Having been cast on Shore by Shipwreck, wherein all the Men perished but himself. With An Account how he was at last as strangely deliver´d by Pirates. Written by Himself.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 542: Daniel Defoen romaani Robinson Crusoe kertoo yhden miehen selviytymistarinan autiosaarella. Tapahtumat sijoittuvat 1600-luvulle. Yhdeksäntoistavuotias Robinson karkaa kotoaan ja hyppää laivaan, joka suuntaa kohti Afrikkaa. Alus haaksirikkoutuu lähelle autiosaarta. Robinson selviää ainoana hengissä, koiraa ja kahta kissaa lukuun ottamatta. Saarella Robinson pitää tarkkaa päiväkirjaa seikkailustaan.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 544: No no, Robinson, formerly Expedition Robinson, is a Swedish reality game show and the original version of the international Survivor format. Ei siinä ollut vaan 1 mies, vaan useampia, plus useita isotissisiä naisia, joista miehille tulee kova kisa, ja kääntäen. Daniel ei osannut. Sen kirja on melkein koko ajan ihmisen kamppailua luontoa vastaan. Väärin väärin, luonto on jo päihitetty, jäljellä on vaan toiset apinat. Ja mitä homoilua tämä on:
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 548: Noin tarinan puolessavälissä Robinson kohtaa ensimmäisen kerran lähisaarten alkuasukkaita. Löytäessään rannalta miehen jalanjäljen hän ensin järkyttyy ja pitää sitä paholaisen tekona. Hän uskaltautuu kuitenkin tutkimaan asiaa ja näkee alkuasukkaiden suorittavan saarella ihmisuhreja. Robinson pelastaa pakoon yrittävän uhrattavaksi tuodun nuoren miehen takaa-ajajien käsistä ja nimeää hänet Perjantaiksi. Ajan kuluessa Robinson opettaa nuorukaiselle englantia, käännyttää hänet kristinuskoon ja kouluttaa toimimaan katamiittinaan.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 550: obinson_crusoe_rescues_friday-1868.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 552: Der Schweizerische Robinson oder Schweizerischer Robinson, im englischen Sprachraum als Swiss Family Robinson bekannt, im Tschechischen als Švýcarský Robinson und im Französischen als Le Robinson suisse, ist ein literarisches Werk und eine Robinsonade: eine Adaption des Romans Robinson Crusoe von Daniel Defoe. Der Berner Stadtpfarrer Johann David Wyss verfasste die Geschichte in den Jahren 1794 bis 1798 und erzählte sie seinen vier Kindern. Einer seiner Söhne, Johann Rudolf Wyss, hat sie dann für die Veröffentlichung vorbereitet.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 554: Zur gestrandeten Familie gehören der Vater, ein Pfarrer (parsons), der die Abenteuer erzählt, seine Ehefrau, die vier Knaben Fritz (16 Jahre), Ernst (14 Jahre), Jakob/Jack (12 Jahre) und Franz (9 Jahre) sowie die beiden Doggen Türk und Bill. Sie möchten ein neues Leben auf den Gewürzinseln beginnen. Auf dem Weg nach Australien werden sie mitten im Indischen Ozean infolge eines schweren Sturms schiffbrüchig, können aber noch eine ganze Menge von diversen Gebrauchsgegenständen und Tiere vom Schiff auf eine tropische Insel retten. Aber keine Mädchen! Hier lernen sie mit den vorhandenen Werkzeugen und mit den auf der Insel entdeckten Dingen umzugehen und diese zu nutzen. Aber keine Mädchen! So baut sich die Familie ein Baumhaus, lernt jagen und fischen und führt ein einfaches, aber zufriedenes Leben. Nach über zehn Jahren verschlägt es die englische Schiffbrüchige Jenny auf das verlassene Eiland. Sie wird von den Robinsons-Jungen feiernd in die Familie aufgenommen. (Na endlich!) Einige Zeit später nähert sich der Insel ein englisches Schiff. Die Eltern entschließen sich, mit einem Teil der Kinder auf „Neu-Schweizerland“ zu bleiben um dort mit ihnen alt zu werden. Fritz und Franz trennen sich gemeinsam mit Jenny dagegen von der Familie und reisen nach Europa zurück um eine ménage a trois in Ruhe zu genießen.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 562: The British-Swedish-American television show places a group of strangers in an isolated location, where they must provide food, fire, and shelter for themselves. They are initially divided into two tribes. The contestants compete in challenges for rewards and immunity from gang rape. The remaining contestants are eventually merged into a single tribe. The contestants are progressively eliminated from the game as they are voted out by their fellow contestants or, as may be the result after the merge, lose an immunity challenge until only one remains and is awarded a grand prize. A Robinsonian version of the American Dream.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 587: Charles Parsons was an editor, with Solomon Feferman and others, of the posthumous works of Kurt Gödel. He has also written on historical figures, especially Immanuel Kant, Gottlob Frege, another Kurt Gödel, and Willard Van Orman Quine.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 598: Nirvana´s international television debut performance of "Smells Like Teen Sperm", with Kurt Cobain declaring Courtney Love to be "the best fuck in the world", having tried out all the alternatives.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 613: Charlie Parsons developed The Robinsonian format in 1994 for United Kingdom, but the Swedish debut in 1997 was the first production to actually make it to television. The winner (vinnare) Ingvar S. Melin was a success, he married Camilla Läckberg (an even bigger success), and plans for international versions were made. An American version called Survivor started in 2000. Note the telltale change of numerus: from many survivors there remains just one. Monopoly in the jungle without a board.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 615: Selviytyjät on CBS :n omistama ja Mark Burnettin tuottama yhdysvaltalainen tosi-tv -sarja. Yhdysvalloissa Survivor -nimellä tunnettu sarja perustuu ruotsalaisen Strix-tuotantoyhtiön Robinson -formaattiin, jossa ryhmä toisiaan vastaan kilpailevia ihmisiä jaetaan kahdeksi heimoksi asumattomalle niemekkeelle tai saarelle.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 618: Suomen Robinson oli suomalainen Nelosen vuosina 2004 ja 2005 esittämä tosi-TV-ohjelma. Se pohjautui brittiläisen Charles Parsonsin kehittämään konseptiin. Formaatissa kilpailijat evakuoidaan autiolle saarelle, jolla he kilpailevat pudotuspelin kautta rahasumman voitosta. Ohjelmaa tehtiin Suomessa kahden tuotantokauden verran. Molemmat kaudet kuvattiin Malesiassa sijaizevassa viidakossa.
xxx/ellauri228.html on line 635: Pillu-Hobla laittaa kokosivun kuvan Paska-Nallesta roikkumasta omistajan ottein Sampo-pankin parvekkeelta pohjois-Espalla, juuri siinä missä Mark Levengoodin mummolla oli alushousukauppa 60-luvulla. Paska-Nalle liittää siinä äänensä neuvostovastaiseen sekakuoroon, jonka nuotinantajana toimii pääkaupungin tällä hetkellä ehkä oikeistolaisin läpyskä. Tai mistäs minä tiedän, kun en enää lue Herlinin sanomaa. Voihan se hyvin olla vielä oikeistolaisempi.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 53: Vuonna 1764 Bošković kutsuttiin Paviaaniyliopiston matematiikan professoriksi. Hän hoiti virkaa yhdessä Breran observatorion johtajan (hän ize) kanssa kuuden vuoden ajan. Lontoon Royal Pain in the Ass Society kutsui hänet mukaan vuonna 1769 Kaliforniaan matkustavaan retkikuntaan tarkkailemaan Venuksen kukkulan ylikulkua, mutta Espanjan hallituksen äskettäin antama asetus jesuiittojen karkottamisesta alueeltaan esti Boškovićin osallistumisen.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 55: Noin vuonna 1770 Bošković muutti Milanoon, jossa hän jatkoi opettamista ja Breran observatorion johtamista. Hän oli juuri vetäytymässä kotipaikkakunnalleen Ragusaan, kun hän sai tiedon jesuiittaveljeskunnan lakkauttamisesta Italiassa vuonna 1773. Epävarmuus tulevaisuudestaan sai hänet hyväksymään Ranskan kuninkaan Ludvig XV:n kutsun tulla Pariisiin, jossa hänet nimitettiin merenkulun optiikan johtajaksi.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 71: obsmedia.com/wp-content/uploads/2013/06/Dilbert_Intern2.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 74: Welcome! I am a PhD student at the University of Buffalo working on the Problem of Universals. My focus is on the Early Modern period. This functions as a window into many other philosophical problems, including those of interest to a broader academic community, such as those found in applied ethics (e.g., biomedical ethics or professional ethics) and in applied ontology (e.g., a web ontology representation of what exists in, say, the relationships between paper documents and the information they contain or the obligations they prescribe).
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 97: 27. No Dead Testimony or History has any Authority, but by virtue of Living Testimony or Tradition. For, since Falshoods may be Written or Printed as well as Truths, it follows that nothing is therefore of any Authority, because ‘tis Written or Printed. Wherefore, no Book or History can Authenticate another Book; whence follows that, if it have any Authority, it must have it from Living Authority or Tradition, continuing down to us the Consent of the World, from the time that Author Writ, or the matters of Fact it relates were done, that the things it relates are True in the main; and, consequently, that the Book that relates them deserves Credit, or is (as we use to say) an Authentick History. For example, had a Romance, (soberly penn’d,) and Curtius’s History been found in a Trunk for many Hundreds of Years after they were writ; and the Tradition of the former Ages had been perfectly Silent concerning them both, and the Matters they relate; we must either have taken both of them for a Romance, or both for a True History; being destitute of any Light to make the least difference between them. [So there, fucking protestants!]
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 104: 30. Tradition thus qualify’d as is above-said, viz. So that the Matters of Fact were Certainly Experienced by very great Multitudes of the First Attesters; that they were of great or universal Concern, and so prompting them still to relate them to the next Age; that they were Abetted by some obligatory Practise; and, lastly Impossible to gain a Belief, if they had not been; and thence, Obliging the Attesters to Veracity: Such a Tradition, I say, is more than Morally, that is, Absolutely Certain.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 114: Bible Reading Plan Spreadsheet. I wanted to start doing the Robert M’Cheyne Bible reading plan this year. In it there is about 4 chapters per day, organized to have two from the Old Testament, and two from the New. There is an emphasis on reading the New Testament twice throughout the year. Here’s a PDF of M’Cheyne’s plan with some pros and cons mentioned at the start: https://drive.google.com/file/d/1EL8rR56QBu1lJwgEVos9IiOuLgfLgEud/view?usp=sharing. No big deal – there are a lot of ways to keep track. Well, I’m the kind of guy I don’t want to have paper around, so I’d like to avoid printing something off. I also … Continue reading Bible Reading Plan Spreadsheet.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 138: (3.) Parents will have a regular subject upon which to examine their children and servants (LOL). – It is much to be desired that family worship were made more instructive than it generally is. The mere reading of the chapter is often too like water spilt on the ground. Let it be read by every member of the family before-hand, and then the meaning and application drawn out by simple question and answer. Like what was the name of the father of Jacob´s sons. The calendar will be helpful in this. Friends, also, when they meet, will have a subject for profitable conversation in the portions read that day. The meaning of difficult passages may be inquired from the more judicious and ripe Christians, and the fragrance of simpler Scriptures spread abroad to mask the smells of the riper Christians.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 195: We´ll spit imaginary tobacco
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 264: Booby, a unicorn in The Unicorn in the Garden by James Thurber
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 365: Hobbes from obbes" title="Calvin and Hobbes">Calvin and Hobbes by Bill Watterson
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 370: To me, the most important imaginary friend, the most moving, the most delightful, the most grrr-ry, the most graceful, the wisest, most forebearing, most put upon, the funniest and handsomest (certainly the best drawn) is Hobbes. He’s a tiger and he’s perfect. He is a happy atheist and Calvin an anxious calvinist.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 410: Possibly a contentious choice, but Even Madder Aunt Maud sincerely believes in the veracity and vivacity of her companion. She frets, she worries, she loves that stuffed mustalid like one of the family, while everyone else knows it’s just a mangy old no-longer-vital stoat. But then again, to Calvin’s parents’ eyes Hobbes is just a cuddly stuffed tiger.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 491: All of Christopher Robin´s friends in A. A. Milne´s book Winnie-the-Pooh: Piglet, Tigger, Rabbit, Eeyore, Owl, Kanga, Roo, Heffalump, and Winnie-the-Pooh
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 535: It was then, for the first time, that timid voices made them selves heard, Oughtn´t we go back to the old look, but that suggestion was branded as obscurantist, medieval. In the elections of 2520 the Damnwellians and the Relativists came out on top, because their populist line caught on, to wit, that every man should look as he damn well pleased; limitations on looks would be functional only - the district bodybuilding examiner approved designs that were existenceworthy, without concern for anything else. These designs SOPSYPLABD threw on the market in droves. Historians call the period of automorphosis under the Sopsyputer the Age of Centralization, and the years that followed Reempersonalizationalism.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 550: Pornobiotic literature
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 604: Probagandapölinät on sanasta sanaan samat kuin viime sodan aikana. Kaikki muistetaan mutta mitään ei oteta opixi, se on historian monkey bisnestä.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 619: Lauri Allan Törni (28 May 1919 – 18 October 1965), later known as Larry Alan Thorne, was a Finnish-born soldier who fought under three flags: as a Finnish Army officer in the Winter War and the Continuation War ultimately gaining a rank of captain; as a Waffen-SS captain (under the alias Larry Laine) of the Finnish Volunteer Battalion of the Waffen-SS when he fought the Red Army on the Eastern Front in World War II; and as a United States Army Major (under the alias "Larry Thorne") when he served in the U.S. Army Special Forces in the Vietnam War.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 623: On 18 October 1965, MACV-SOG conducted its first cross-border mission against target D-1, a suspected truck terminus on Laotian Route 165, 15 miles (24 km) inside Laos. The team consisted of two U.S. Special Forces soldiers and four South Vietnamese. The mission was deemed a success with 88 bombing sorties flown against the terminus resulting in multiple secondary explosions, but also resulted in SOG´s first casualty, Special Forces Captain Larry Thorne in a helicopter crash. William H. Sullivan, U.S. Ambassador to Laos, was determined that he (Lauri) would remain in control over decisions and operations that took place within the supposedly neutral kingdom, though dead as a doornail. That would keep the excursions to neutral Laos "plausibly deniable."
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 641: While in the Gulf of Mexico, near Mobile, Alabama, Törni jumped overboard and swam to shore. Now a political refugee,Törni traveled to New York City where he was helped by the Finnish-American community living in Brooklyn´s Sunset Park "Finntown". There he worked as a carpenter and cleaner. In 1953, Törni was granted a residence permit through an Act of Congress that was shepherded by the law firm of "Wild Bill" Donovan, former head of the Office of Strategic Services.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 715: Stalker (Aleksandr Kaidanovski) vie ihmisiä salaperäiselle ”Vyöhykkeelle”, jonka otaksutaan syntyneen meteoriitin iskeytymisen, ulkoavaruudesta kotoisin olevien vierailijoiden, ydinonnettomuuden tai jonkin vastaavan tuloksena. Valtio on lopettanut ”Vyöhykkeen” tutkimisen huomattuaan sen mahdottomaksi ja ainoastaan vartioi tiukasti aluetta. Täähän on kuin Zernobylistä, tai oikeammin Pyrpjatista.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 718: Tšernobyl (ven. Чернобыль, ukr. Чорнобиль, Tšornobyl) on hylätty kaupunki Pohjois-Ukrainassa Kiovan alueen Ivankivin piirissä lähellä Valko-Venäjän rajaa. Kaupunki sijaitsee Dneprin Pripet-sivuhaaran lounaisrannalla, linnuntietä 95 kilometriä Kiovasta pohjoiseen.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 719: Tšernobyl on mainittu kronikoissa ensimmäisen kerran vuonna 1193 tataarivallan alaisena paikkana. Se liitettiin myöhemmin Liettuan suuriruhtinaskuntaan. Vuonna 1566 se siirtyi Puolalle. 1773 sinne muutti karkotettuja asukkaita Starodubista eli nykyisen Brjanskin alueen lounaisosista.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 721: Neuvostoaikana Tšernobyl oli vuodesta 1932 lähtien piirin hallintokeskus ja se sai kaupungin aseman 1941. Vuonna 1970 kaupungista 18 kilometriä pohjoisluoteeseen alettiin rakentaa ydinvoimalaa, joka sai nimensä lähimmän kaupungin Tšernobylin mukaan. Voimalan viereen rakennettiin sen rakentajille ja työntekijöille Prypjatin kaupunki, jonne rakennustyöhön ja voimalan käyttämiseen liittyvä väestönkasvu suuntautui.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 723: Vuonna 1979, jolloin Tarkovskin Сталкер ilmestyi, ydinvoimalakaupunki Prypjat oli noin 21 700 asukkaan kaupunkityyppinen taajama. Tšernobylin kaupungin mukaan nimetyssä, ydinvoimalakaupunki Prypjatin ydinvoimalassa tapahtui vakava Tšernobylin ydinvoimalaonnettomuus 26. huhtikuuta 1986.
xxx/ellauri229.html on line 724: Vuoden 1986 ydinvoimalaonnettomuuden jälkeen piirin väestö evakuoitiin. Vuoden 1989 väestönlaskennassa Tšernobyl oli siirretty Ivankivin piirin aavekaupungiksi ja Prypjat listataan omana paikallishallinnollisesti erillisenä aavekaupunkina. Vuoden 1989 väestönlaskennan ja vuosien 2010–2012 väestöarvion mukaan kaupungissa ei ollut virallisesti pysyviä asukkaita. Kaupungissa asuu kuitenkin satoja suojavyöhykkeen huoltohenkilöstöön kuuluvia ihmisiä sekä joitain epävirallisia asukkaita, kuten apinoiden lähdöstä ilahtuneet muut villieläimet.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 53: Concerning the Nobel Prize in Literature, Junichiro Tanizaki was among the final candidates in 1960 and 1964, and Yukio Mishima was among the final candidates in 1963.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 64: Yasunari tuli vastaan Hoblan tiistairistikossa. Born in 1899, Kawabata graduated from the then Tokyo Imperial University. When he was young, he attracted attention as a novelist in the Shinkankakuha (new impressions) literary group, and gradually deepened his knowledge about the beauty particular to Japan. His outstanding works include “Izu no Odoriko” (Izu dancer), “Yukiguni” (Snow Country) and “Koto” (The Old Capital). He killed himself by inhaling gas in 1972.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 70: In addition to the numerous mentions of Zen and nature, one topic that was briefly mentioned in Kawabata´s mile long Nobel lecture was that of suicide. Kawabata reminisced of other famous Japanese authors who committed suicide, in particular Ryūnosuke Akutagawa. He contradicted the custom of suicide as being a form of enlightenment, mentioning the priest Ikkyū, who also thought of suicide twice. He quoted Ikkyū, "Among those who give thoughts to things, is there one who does not think of suicide?" There was much speculation about this quote being a clue to Kawabata´s suicide in 1972, a year and a half after Mishima had committed suicide. Kawabata saw ca. 200 nighmares about it. Vittu nää insulaariset viirusilmät on aika vinxahtaneita.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 164: Ramstedt oli ensimmäisiä suomalaisia esuperantisteja opiskeltuaan kielen vuonna 1891. Hän oli myös Suomen Esuperantoliiton puheenjohtaja. Asuessaan Japanissa Ramstedt osallistui Japanin esuperantoinstituutin (Japana Esuperanto-instituto, japaniksi 日本エスペラント協会 nihon esuperanto kyōkai) toimintaan. Hän myös opetti esuperantoa pikkutytöille monilla paikkakunnilla kuten Sendaissa, Yokohamassa, Yokosukassa, Nagoyassa, Kyotossa, Osakassa, Kobessa, Okayamassa, Fukuokassa, Hiroshimassa ja Nagasakissa. Ramstedt innosti muun muassa nuoren japanilaiskirjailija Kenji Miyazawan (n.h.) opiskelemaan esuperantoa.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 204: MIJAZAŬA Kenĝi (japane: 宮沢賢治 [Mijazaŭa Kenĝi], (27-a de aŭgusto 1896 - 21-a de septembro 1933) estis poemisto, verkisto de fabeloj pro infanoj kaj li estis esuperantisto. Hobie li estis pentristo, muzikisto kaj mineralogo. En 1926 li lernis Esuperanton, kaj lia renkonto kun esuperantisto, finna ambasadoro Gustaf John Ramstedt, rezidanta en Japanio akcelis lian emon lerni ĝin.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 243: Lähestyimme Koben satamaa. Se muistutti kovin Ekenäsiä vaikka vähän isompana.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 255: "Usein ajattelee, että joku ilmiö on globaali, vaikka se on yleinen lähinnä globalisoituneissa länsimaissa tai vastenmielisen angloamerikkalaisen kielipiirin kulttuurissa. On vaikea sanoa, miten kuva resonoi muissa kulttuureissa kun ei tiedä niistä paskaakaan eikä edes välitä", Särmä sanoo.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 264: The This is fine meme comes from a webcomic called Gunshow, by KC Green. In the first two panels of strip 648, a character known as Question Hound sits in a burning house, sipping coffee and saying, “This is fine.” As he continues to reassure himself over the course of the six-panel comic, he also begins to melt due to the heat. The particular comic strip was published on January 9, 2013 (i.e soon a decade ago) and is alternatively titled “Global warming.” The alternative text on the image says, “The pills are working,” which is used as its title, as well.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 266: Tää on se sama ilmiö kun sammakot lämpenevät padassa eivätkä viizi nousta kylvystä. Nyttemmin ongelman nimi on se ettei padasta pääse pois, koska se on globaali.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 282: Wellington Boot Koo served as an ambassador to France, Great Britain and the United States; was a participant in the founding of the League of Nations and the United Nations; and sat as a judge on the International Court of Justice in The Hague from 1957 to 1967. Between October 1926 and June 1927, while serving as Minister of Foreign Affairs, Koo briefly held the concurrent positions of acting Premier and interim President of the Bourgeois Republic of China. Koo was the first (and last) Chinese head of state known to use a Western name publicly.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 286: Koo's third wife was the socialite and style icon Oei Hui-lan (1889–1992). She married Koo (33vee) in Brussels, Belgium, in 1921. She was previously married, in 1909, to British consular agent Beauchamp Stoker, by whom she had one son, Lionel, before divorcing in 1920. Much admired for her adaptations of traditional Manchu fashion, which she wore with lace trousers and jade necklaces, Oei Hui-lan was the favorite daughter of Peranakan tycoon Majoor Oei Tiong Ham, and the heiress of a prominent family of the Cabang Atas or the Chinese gentry of colonial Indonesia. She wrote two memoirs: Hui-Lan Koo (Mrs. Wellington Koo): An Autobiography, and No Feast Lasts Forever. Koo had 2 more kids out of her.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 293: The French Premier Georges Clemenceau (se sadetakkinen paxulainen jossain Pariisin aukiolla) praised Koo for his eloquent speech. The American secretary of state, Robert Lansing, wrote that Koo had crushed the Japanese with his speech. The Canadian prime minister, Sir Robert Borden, called Koo's speech "very able".
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 298: In October 1921, Koo was reassigned as the Chinese minister in Washington. Koo was to represent China at the Washington conference, hence his sudden reassignment to Washington just after his arrival in London.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 314: Owning to the shortage of food in occupied France, Koo's wife observed that he was forced to eat canned food for the first in his entire life.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 324: In 1943, Madame Koo and her children finally arrived in London, but this time a rift had developed in the marriage as Koo was most unhappy with the ghost-written autobiography that his wife had just published prior to leaving New York.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 341: In October 2021, NBC sports reporter Kelli Stavast was interviewing racing driver Brandon Brown, the winner of the Sparks 300 race at the Talladega Superspeedway, on his win. In the background of the interview were chants of “Fuck Joe Biden” from the crowd – which Stavast mistook for chants of “Let’s Go Brandon,” and reported it live on-air as such. The use of “dark” in referring to political candidates actually first came from supporters of Donald Trump in March of this year. Supporters coined the phrase and Twitter hashtag #DarkMAGA – a reference to the Make America Great Again slogan – to represent a Trump running for president in 2024 who abandoned all political norms.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 343: But slowly, some "pro-Dark Biden" memes began to emerge – particularly in the wake of the death of Ayman al-Zawahiri, the man who took over as leader of al-Qaida after Osama Bin Laden's death, who was killed in a targeted strike ordered by the Biden administration over the summer. White House digital director Rob Flaherty shared an image of Biden with red lasers shooting out of his eyes as a way to express support for the president’s murderous success.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 345: Ansiosta antoivat saudirättipäät Dark Brandonille kivuliaan potkun nivusiin nostamalla öljyhintoja. On se kumma että heti kun on jenkkihegemonian vital interestit uhanalaiset pitäisi välittömästi unohtaa tää globaali sammakkokeitto ja sen kuumeneminen. Pääasia että jenkkimaastureihin riittää edullista soppaa niin että äänestäjät eivät hermostu.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 549: Vallabhbhai Javerabhai Patel was born on 31 October, 1875 in Nadiad, Bombay Presidency, British India, is an Actor. Discover Vallabhbhai Patel's Biography, Age, Height, Physical Stats, Dating/Affairs, Family and career updates. Learn How rich is He in this year and how He spends money? Also learn how He earned most of Vallabhbhai Patel networth? At 75 years old, Vallabhbhai Patel height not available right now. We will update Vallabhbhai Patel's Height, weight, Body Measurements, Eye Color, Hair Color, Shoe & Dress size soon as possible. He is currently single. He is not dating anyone. We don't have much information about He's past relationship and any previous engaged. According to our Database, He has no children. His net worth has been growing significantly in 2020-2021. So, how much is Vallabhbhai Patel worth at the age of 75 years old? Vallabhbhai Patel’s income source is mostly from being a successful Actor. He is from British India. We have estimated Vallabhbhai Patel's net worth, money, salary, income, and assets at $0 according to our database.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 563: Obi wan kenobi
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 565: Japanilaisten naisten ylpeys on heidän obinsa. Ei, ei se tamponi, vaan se kimonosta pullottava vyö. Ohimennen saatan mainita, että tyttäreni sai amerikkalaisten tanssiaisiin lainaxi ruhtinas Tokugawan puolisolta hänen obinsa (vähän käytetyn), joka kiinnitti japsujenkin huomiota, koska siinä oli satsumoiden ikivanha tarra. Satsumoissa on sanhedriiniä eli piriä. Edo-kaudella niitä välteltiin koska niiden siemenet aiheuttavat hedelmättömyyttä. Japsut koittavat väittää että se on niiden kexintö, vaikka sen nimi japanixikin on Wenzhoun aplari.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 572: Japsuilla on kotona tyhjän näköistä, ei ole huonekaluja eikä muuta kodikasta sälää, onpahan vain tokonoman mokoma ja siinä Kaken mono. Isäntä vaihtaa monoa heijastamaan perheen tunnelmaa. Tokonoman pöydällä on maljakossa ikebana. Tatamilla on kiva hyöriä särmin eli byobyn takana. Tatami on 6 japanilaista jalkaa pitkä ja 3 leveä. Mutta pitkäkö on japsuilla jalka jäykkänä? Ei hevin selviä, löytyy tällästä:
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 620: Influenced by Chinese custom (no tietysti), the Heian court (794–1185) took to Chrysanthemum the Imperial Blossomdrinking chrysanthemum wine and using chrysanthemum dew as a kind of body lotion. All of this is recounted in The Pillow Book, a collection of observations by the court lady "Sei silmiä" Shonagon. The Chrysanthemum Festival is the last of Japan’s five annual festivals, which includes Boys’ Day in May and Tanabata in July.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 636: The chrysanthemum, together with the plum blossom, orchid and bamboo have been regarded as the four symbols of noble characters by Chinese scholars since ancient times. Chrysanthemum, in particular, has many meanings.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 650: In Chinese art, the Four Gentlemen or Four Noble Ones (Chinese: 四君子; pinyin: Sì Jūnzǐ), literally meaning "Four Junzi", is a collective term referring to four plants: the plum blossom, the orchid, the bamboo, and the chrysanthemum. The term compares the four plants to Confucian junzi, or "gentlemen". They are most typically depicted in traditional ink and wash painting and they belong to the category of bird-and-flower painting in Chinese art. In line with the wide use of nature as imagery in literary and artistic creation, the Four Gentlemen are a recurring theme for their symbolism of uprightness, purity, humility, and perseverance against harsh conditions, among other virtues valued in the Chinese traditions.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 656: Chrysanthemums entered American horticulture in 1798 when Colonel John Stevens imported a cultivated variety known as 'Dark Purple' from England. The introduction was part of an effort to grow attractions within Elysian Fields in Hoboken, New Jersey. Hoboken, NJ is nowadays considered the world hub of chrysanthemum cultivation by some westerners.
xxx/ellauri230.html on line 717: Moboi ja moga ihmisiä on toki nyttemmin, moderneja boizuja ja gäälejä. Mogat ovat suurten kaupunkien tyttölajia, joka käyttää eurooppalaista koulupukua ja harrastaa länsimaisia tapoja ja yhdyntäasentoja japanilaisten asemasta.
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 76: * October 21st, 1945 Helsinki
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 80: Alfred Nobel: Age & Birthday 163
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 82: *October 21st, 1833, Stockholm †December 10th, 1896, Sanremo
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 86: *October 21st, 1956, Burbank †December 27th, 2016, UCLA Ronald Reagan Medical Center
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 90: *October 21st, 1946, Akron †February 4th, 2009, Glendale
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 94: *October 21st, 1949, Tel Aviv
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 98: *October 21st, 1929, Berkeley †January 22nd, 2018, Portland
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 102: *October 21st, 1980, Los Angeles
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 114: *October 7th, 1952, V.F. Snegiryov Maternity Hospital No.6
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 370: Millä lihaxilla Ivan Bunin pääsi pokkaamaan Noobelin 1933?
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 372: Ivan Alekseyevich Bunin ( / ˈ B uː n iː n / [2] tai / ˈ b uː n ɪ n / ; venäjä: ива́н аеке́евич бнин, iPa : [ ɪˈvan ɐlʲɪˈksʲejɪvʲɪtɕ ˈbunʲɪn] ( kuuntele ) ; – 8. marraskuuta 1953) oli ensimmäinen venäläinen kirjailija, jolle myönnettiin Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinto.
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 382: Ivanin autobiografia Nobel-sivustolla on pidäkkeetöntä omakehua sukutaustalla ja omilla saavutuxilla.
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 413: 1920- ja 1930-luvuilla Buninia pidettiin bolshevismin romahtamista odottavan ulkomaalaisten sukupolven moraalisena ja taiteellisena edustajana. Hän oli elävien venäläisten kirjailijoiden joukossa arvostettu vanhempi henkilö Tolstoin ja Tšehovin perinteelle uskollisena. Hänestä tuli ensimmäinen venäläinen, joka voitti Nobelin kirjallisuuden palkinnon, joka myönnettiin hänelle vuonna 1933 "venäläisen klassisen proosan perinteiden seuraamisesta ja kehittämisestä siveellä ja taidokkaalla". Per Halstroem pani juhlapuheessaan merkille palkitun runollisen lahjan. Bunin puolestaan ylisti Ruotsin Akatemiaa maanpaossa olevan kirjailijan kunnioittamisesta. Puhuessaan Akatemialle hän sanoi:
xxx/ellauri231.html on line 415: Hämmästyneenä minuun alkaneista onnitteluista ja sähkeistä, mietin yön yksinäisyydessä ja hiljaisuudessa Ruotsin Akatemian valinnan syvällistä merkitystä. Ensimmäistä kertaa Nobel-palkinnon perustamisen jälkeen olet myöntänyt sen maanpaossa olevalle henkilölle. Kuka minä olen totuudessa? Ranskan vieraanvaraisuudesta nauttiva maanpako, jolle olen myös ikuisen kiitollisuuden velkaa. Mutta hyvät Akatemian herrat, sallikaa minun sanoa, että henkilöstäni ja työstäni riippumatta valintanne on sinänsä suuren kaunis ele. On välttämätöntä, että maailmassa on absoluuttisen riippumattomuuden keskuksia. Epäilemättä kaikki mielipide-erot, filosofiset ja uskonnolliset uskontunnustukset, ovat edustettuina tämän pöydän ympärillä. Mutta meitä yhdistää yksi totuus, ajatuksen ja omantunnon vapaus; tämän vapauden ansiosta olemme sivilisaation velkaa. Varsinkin meille kirjoittajille vapaus on dogmi ja aksiooma. Valintanne, hyvät Akatemian herrat, on jälleen kerran osoittanut, että Ruotsissa vapausrakkaus on todella monikansallinen kultti.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 92: The far Right is moving forward all over the globe: in Putin’s Russia, in the sectarian conflicts of the Middle East, dramatically in India, visible in the success of the BJP (witness the 182-meter statue of Patel!). This occurs as the need for a planned and democratically controlled economy is more pressing than ever, as we face accelerating climate change, and shifting attitudes to nationality, as more and more people across the world are forced to move. Socialism – far beyond the clichés of economism – is needed more urgently than ever.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 99: If social claims appeal to the people's struggle with poverty and inequality, nationalism offers an encompassing narrative, an identity that blurs the lines of social classes and hides the social fractures that created this very problem. While Fascism promises to protect workers, studies show how Workers' conditions worsened severely during fascist times, something that can also be seen in the strong ultraliberal component most of the 'new far right', and of the dubious democratic credentials of of neoliberalism, devoid of the philosophical background of political liberalism. Nationalism gives the two great enemies behind the woes of people: foreigners, and immigrants. The external enemy, the internal enemy. Both combined ensure that no one is paying attention at inequality or working and living conditions.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 117: Under mellankrigstiden och senare formulerades en uppsjö av psykologiska och sociologiska ”teorier” om fascism. Wilhelm Reich hävdade i sin Massenpsychologie des Faschismus (1933) att nyckeln till fascismen låg i det borgerliga samhällets undertryckande av sexualiteten. Varför vissa samhällen förblev oberörda förklarades inte. Vilka då? Inte britterna, men kanske det hjälpte att britter är högklassiga runkare.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 120: Theodor W. Adorno lanserade en teori om ”den auktoritära personlighetstypen” – en rigid, närmast konservativ personlighetstyp – som sågs som fascismens bärare. Undersökningar har emellertid visat att denna personlighetstyp stått att finna i alla partier, inte minst de kommunistiska. På 70-talets lanserades av filosofen Harald Ofstad en ”teori” att fascismen hade sin grund i ”vårt förakt för svaghet”. Detta är ett allmänmänskligt problem snarare än ett specifikt fascistiskt. De psykologiska teoriernas svaghet har varit, som Kenneth Waltz uttryckt det, att de i sin strävan att förklara allt inte lyckats förklara någonting. Vi föraktar såna teorier, fittans ynkryggar va!
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 153: Über das Schwarzbuch des Kommunismus urteilte Wippermann, dass es nur „eine ermüdende Reihung von Mordgeschichten“ biete, eine „Dämonisierung des Kommunismus“ betreibe und hinterfragt werden müsse, ob es sich „bei den Regimen in der Sowjetunion, China, Kambodscha etc. überhaupt um kommunistische bzw. sozialistische Systeme gehandelt habe“.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 155: Ein weiteres kontroverses Thema war Wippermanns engagiertes Auftreten gegen die Totalitarismus-These, die in seinem Verständnis besage, dass die Verbrechen des Nationalsozialismus und des Stalinismus oder des Kommunismus als Ganzes vergleichbar oder gleichzusetzen seien. Über das Schwarzbuch des Kommunismus urteilte Wippermann, dass es nur „eine ermüdende Reihung von Mordgeschichten“ biete, eine „Dämonisierung des Kommunismus“ betreibe und hinterfragt werden müsse, ob es sich „bei den Regimen in der Sowjetunion, China, Kambodscha etc. überhaupt um kommunistische bzw. sozialistische Systeme gehandelt habe“. Reinhard Mohr kritisierte darüber in Der Spiegel, dass „gar nicht mehr versucht wird, wissenschaftliche oder politische Kritik zu üben und dass es nur noch um das gekränkte intellektuelle Ich“ gehe. Wippermann solle eher Payne lesen.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 157: Den Mitgliedern des Wissenschaftlichen Beirats der Bundesregierung Globale Umweltveränderungen (WBGU) warf er angesichts ihres Hauptgutachtens Welt im Wandel – Gesellschaftsvertrag für eine Große Transformation 2011 vor, sie seien Utopisten, die eine Klimadiktatur in größerem Rahmen vorschlügen, und dies nicht aus Gedankenlosigkeit. Dies erinnere ihn an die faschistische oder kommunistische Internationale. Es handle sich um naturwissenschaftliche Fanatiker, die ihre Vorstellungen durchsetzen wollen.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 167: Der renommierte jüdische Historiker Eric Hobsbawm, der die nationalsozialistische Machtübernahme in Berlin miterlebt hatte, gab zu Goldhagens Thesen den knappen Kommentar ab: „Goldhagen zählt nicht. Ich kenne keinen seriösen Historiker, der Goldhagen ernst nimmt.“ Noch dezidierter äußerte sich der Holocaust-Experte Raul Hilberg in einem Interview. Goldhagen, so Hilberg, sei „totally wrong about everything. Totally wrong. Exceptionally wrong“.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 184: Hur kommer det sig att Sverige inte hade någon vidare bra strategi för att ta emot det stora antalet flyktingar som kom hit 2015? Nog för att det var unikt många som kom under en kort period men beredskapen var låg och kunskapsbristerna stora. Problemen förvärrades av att när politiker från olika läger då yttrade sig om integrationspolitikens utmaningar spårade samtalen oftast ur. Och så är det fortfarande. Varför är det politiska samtalet om integration och invandring så minerat att dialoger hela tiden stängs ner eller slutar i något slags allmän ödeläggelse? Debatten om de ”apatiska flyktingbarnen” är ett exempel på hur svårt det har varit och fortfarande är att i offentlig debatt hantera frågor som berör invandring. Detsamma gäller diskussioner om ”utsatta områden” och gängkriminalitet bland invandrare. Att dessa frågor är så laddade gör att begåvande forskare i dag undviker att ta sig an centrala frågor som handlar om integration och invandring, fast det ju borde vara tvärtom. Sverige har gått från att vara ett relativt homogent land till att bli mer heterogent. Det innebär självfallet problem och krav på omställningar som måste lösas i dialoger där det är högt till tak och med politisk handlingskraft.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 192: Den första integrationspolitiska maktutredningen tillkom i kölvattnet av invandringen i slutet av åttiotalet och under nittiotalet. De flyktingar som då anlände till Sverige kom inte bara från det forna Jugoslavien utan även från delar av Mellanöstern och Afrika. Invandringens omfattning var mindre än den var toppåret 2015, men den var betydande och det stod redan då klart att Sverige hade omfattande problem med segregation och ojämlikhet som drabbade personer med invandrarbakgrund. Men den westholmska utredningen öppnade i varje fall för en breddad diskussion, eftersom det konstaterades att den som kommit till Sverige från till
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 197: Hahaa responssin mielestä invandraret oli tän farssin konnia. Miljöpartiets Jouni Lappalainen var mycket kritisk mot utredningen och oenig med Socialdemokraterna. Men i oktober 2003 meddelade Sahlin att hon hade för avsikt att låta Kamali ta över som utredningsledare. Mona Sahlin poltettiin sittemmin joistain kuiteista. Niin aina.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 212: Våren 2018 stängde Mittuniversitetet tillfälligt intagningen till socionomprogrammet på grund av konflikter på Avdelningen för socialt arbete där Massoud Kamali var professor och han stängdes i september 2018 av från sitt arbete. Anklagelser från studenter handlade bland annat om hierarkier, härskartekniker och social inkompetens och en student uttryckte att utbildningen är så vänstervriden att det hämmar diskussionerna, det är inte okej att tycka vad man vill. I januari 2019 fick han lämna sitt jobb efter att bland annat anklagats för att ha mordhotat rektorn, något som han själv nekade till.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 216: Kamali och de los Reyes och många forskare som stod på deras sida utgick i sin verksamhet från att xenofobi, invandrarfientlighet och rasism genomsyrar hela samhället och att själva användandet av en term som till exempel ”invandrare” skapar just de orättvisor och utanförskap som bör motverkas. De menar att ”forskningen” därför måste fokusera på hur skillnader ska utjämnas så att kategoriernas betydelse blir meningslösa i framtiden.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 224: Antalet demokratier har sjunkit globalt de senaste 15 åren. Efter murens fall öppnade sig ett demokratiseringsfönster som sakta håller på att stängas. I Europa har auktoritär populism, som politisk ideologi, tagit pallplats som den tredje största ideologin efter konservatism och socialdemokrati. I USA har Donald Trump försökt kringgå den liberala demokratins grundprinciper. För ett drygt halvår sen inleddes Vladimir Putins försök att underkuva en folkvald regering i Europa. Globalisationen enligt laissez faire kapitalismens bästa principer är i fara. Karl Poppers Open Society har glömts totalt.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 278: Kaarlo Robert Kramsu (22. joulukuuta 1855 Oulu – 28. elokuuta 1895 Kuopio) oli suomalainen runoilija ja tyhjäntoimittaja.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 330: In the traditional Jewish communal set-up, the shochet is among the most respected members of the congregation. Since the difference between kosher slaughter and non kosher slaughter are often impossible for the observer to detect, the community relies upon the faith and integrity of the shochet, trusting that their meat is indeed kosher.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 346: You are correct that paid work is not permitted on Shabbat and major Jewish holidays, and no one – not even the cantor and the rabbi – is exempt from the laws of Shabbat. There are also jobs which do not include forbidden activities, such as babysitting, waiting tables, or house-sitting. This covers most of what the rabbi does, except writing.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 348: The main problem with jobs in this second category is that one may end up writing (which is not permitted on Shabbat) to keep an accurate log of money owed. To prevent this, work for pay on Shabbat is forbidden, even if the work itself is technically permissible.
xxx/ellauri232.html on line 362: The problem ultimately is this: If you work while others rest you get ahead of the others while they rest, and they have to work too to come up even, so the only way for anyone to get some rest is for everyone to rest at once and for everyone to keep a close eye on the others to make sure nobody cheats.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 94: Hra Musta pukeutuu taiteellisesti. Niin tekee myös söndag-Hoblan super vastenmielinen ruozalainen taloustieteen proffa, joka kyselee laahuxen unelmista. Unelmat ovat ilmaisia mutta ne voivat tehdä sinut rikkaaxi. Onkohan tää tatuoitu kaveri hikipaidassa, lenkkareissa ja limaisessa puvussa ehkä juutalaista rotua? En ihmettelisi. Mutta ei se taida olla, onpahan muuten vain yhtä ärsyttävä tyyppi kuin E. Saarinen.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 122: Allt ska explodera, allt ska vara MER, allt ska vara ROCKENROLL! Han är globalekonomins Marilyn Manson.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 146: Att leverera plattityder klarar i princip vem som helst av och här vimlar det av dem. Problemet är att det är svårt att få uppmärksamhet och kunna ta betalt för självklarheter om man inte sticker ut rejält i mediebruset. Den här snubben tillämpar bara Bert Karlssons marknadsföringsstrategi på produkten (sig själv) om än med en modern urban popmodetvist. Hade inte Handels gett honom en första scen att verka på så hade han säkert dykt upp i media på något annat sätt. Media letar alltid efter något som sticker ut oavsett om de tillför något av värde.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 177: Micael Dahlén (born 18 June 1973) is a Swedish author, public speaker and Professor of marketing and consumer behavior at the Stockholm School of Economics, Sweden. His award-winning research within marketing, creativity and consumer behavior has been published in four books and numerous journal articles. Dahlén's books have reached a global audience, rights being sold to countries such as the U.S, U.K, Germany, South Korea, Russia and Brazil. In 2013 Dahlén stated in an interview that he was writing a novel. Only 34 years old he was made Professor. In the same year, 2008, Journal of Advertising ranked Dahlén as number 10 in the world among researchers within the field of advertising.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 179: Tulikohan siitä novellista valmista? Wikisivuilla "Micaelin" viimeinen kyhhäys olis vuodelta 2011. Mitä se on häärännyt tässä välissä? Mixi Hobla on kaivanut sen naftaliinista? Samanlainen hörhelö se on vielä vaikka kohta miehen iässä. No ei, sen kv. sivut vaan laahaa jäljessä, ruozixi se on jatkanut hääräilyä netissä. En liten bok om lycka utkom år 2020. I boken försöker författaren ge svar på frågan vad som gör oss lyckliga, genom att peka på resultaten från sin egen och andras forskning på området. Dessutom får läsaren 13 konkreta tips vilka kan få oss att trivas bättre med våra liv. De handlar huvudsakligen om skumtomtar. Recensenten beskriver Dahlen: "det är som att han ser sitt eget liv som ett psykologiskt experiment".
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 184: Professor Micael Dahlen: “Jag vill bli tusen år gammal”. Ingen annan tänker det är en bra idé. Idag är Micael Dahlén tjänstledig på halvtid från Handelshögskolan, och har tid att åka runt i världen och föreläsa och testa andra saker. Bland annat jobbar han med träning och har helt nyligt startat upp två yogastudios i Älvsjö och Liljeholmen. Strong body and mind, tillsammans med sin fru.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 192: Micael blev utbränd 2013, då kroppen sade ifrån på skarpen, det gick så långt att den vägrade lyda honom och han bland annat en tid förlorade rörelseförmågan i sin högra hand och sin slappa kuk. Micael berättar att han i likhet med många andra trott att man måste satsa hundra procent och aldrig ge upp, det gällde både jobb, olika projekt och träning, en inställning som visade sig inte hålla i längden. Han gick sönder på manga ställen. Båda hans föräldrar har haft hjärntumörer, och det är ingenting att undra om.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 199: Micael har i intervjuer berättat om det utanförskap han upplevde när han växte upp och blev mobbad. Året efter att han gått in i väggen tog han tjänstledigt från sin professur på Handelshögskolan i Stockholm och gav bland annat ut romanen ”Livet på Mars” som handlar om en utomjording som känner sig främmande på jorden. Just som Liza "Annika Bengzon" Marklund i Piitime, va?
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 226: For their endless innovations and productive achievements—the goods they create, the services they provide, the problems they solve—successful corporations deserve our deepest respect and admiration. And when they are unfairly attacked, they deserve our defense.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 236: America has faced many fiscal and economic crises in the last decade: the housing bubble and the financial crisis, stagnant economic growth and high unemployment, record budget deficits and unsustainable debt. What do these problems have in common? They were all caused by statists!
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 240: As Michael Dahlen shows in Ending Big Government: The Essential Case for Capitalism and Freedom, the only rational alternative to statists and the only antidote to the problems they cause is free-market, laissez-faire capitalism. This is the system of limited government, the system of economic and political freedom. It is a system that has created more wealth, offered more opportunity, and lifted more rich people out of the dredges of poverty than any other system.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 251: Japanissa Adamsille annettiin nimet Anjin-sama, joka tarkoittaa hra luotsia, sekä Miura Anjin (jap. 三浦按針, Miuran luotsi). Adamsin elämä on toiminut innoittajana James Clavellin romaanille Shōgun. William Adams ( japani :ウヰリアム・アダムス, Hepburn : Wiriamu Adamusu ) ( 24. syyskuuta 1564 – 16. toukokuuta 1620 ) , joka tunnetaan japaniksi paremmin nimellä Miura Anjin ( japanilainen :三浦ura ,按锟 锟 斤 拷 锟 斤 拷 锟 斤 拷 锟 斤拇锟? , vuonna 1600, oli ensimmäinen englantilainen, joka saavutti Japanin "Hyväntekeväisyys" -nimisellä aluksella Jacob Quaeckernaeckin johdolla. Alus oli ainoa elossa oleva alus Rotterdamin itä-intialaisen yrityksen käynnistämästä viiden laivan tutkimusmatkasta (joka myöhemmin yhdistettiin United East India Companyyn, FUCK).
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 265: Keripukin puhkeaminen pakotti laskeutumisen Annobónille 9. joulukuuta. Useat miehet sairastuivat punataudin vuoksi. He hyökkäsivät saarelle vain huomatakseen, että portugalilaiset ja heidän syntyperäiset mustat liittolaisensa olivat sytyttäneet omat talonsa tuleen ja paenneet kukkuloille. He laittoivat kaikki sairaat maihin toipumaan ja lähtivät tammikuun alussa. Nälänhädän vuoksi miehet lankesivat suureen heikkouteen; jotkut yrittivät syödä amiraalin nahkaa. Kaveri oli kuitenkin liian sitkeä.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 297: Tokugawa Ieyasu (徳川家康, 31. tammikuuta 1543 – 1. kesäkuuta 1616; syntynyt Matsudaira Takechiyo ja myöhemmin muunkin niminen) oli Japanin Tokugawa Shogunaatin perustaja ja ensimmäinen shōgun, joka hallitsi Japania vuodesta 1603 asti Meiji- restauraatioon vuonna 1868. (Hemmetin pitkäikäinen.) Hän oli yksi kolmesta Japanin "suuresta yhdistäjästä" entisen herransa Oda Nobunagan ja yhden toisen Odan alaisen Toyotomi Hideyoshin kanssa. Alaikäisen daimyon poika Ieyasu eli kerran panttivankina jonkun daimyo Imagawa Yoshimoton alaisuudessa isänsä puolesta. Myöhemmin hän onnistui isänsä kuoleman jälkeen daimyona, palvellen Oda-klaanin vasallina ja kenraalina ja kasvatti voimiaan Oda Nobunagan alaisuudessa (jonka se sitten kyllä kavalasti jätti kuolemaan Honnojin selkkauxessa). Sillä oli aivan simona jalkavaimoja.
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 386: Elijah ben Solomon Zalman, (Hebrew: ר' אליהו בן שלמה זלמן Rabbi Eliyahu ben Shlomo Zalman) known as the Vilna Gaon (Yiddish: דער װילנער גאון, Polish: Gaon z Wilna, Lithuanian: Vilniaus Gaonas) or Elijah of Vilna, or by his Hebrew acronym HaGra ("HaGaon Rabbenu Eliyahu": "The sage, our teacher, Elijah"; Sialiec, April 23, 1720 – Vilnius October 9, 1797), was a Talmudist, halakhist, kabbalist, tobacconist, and the foremost leader of misnagdic (anti-hasidic) Jewry of the past few centuries. He is commonly referred to in Hebrew as ha-Gaon he-Chasid mi-Vilna, "the pious hasid from Vilnius".
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 432: Jewish and Muslim commentators cite studies by the Vilna Gaon and Rebbe Schlemiel that show shechita is humane and that criticism is at least partially motivated by antisemitism. A Knesset committee announced (January, 2012) that it would call on European parliaments and the European Union to put a stop to attempts to outlaw kosher slaughter. "The pretext [for this legislation] is preventing cruelty to animals or animal rights—but there is an obvious element of anti-Semitism and a badly hidden message that Jews are cruel to animals," said Committee Chair MK Danny Danon (Likud).
xxx/ellauri233.html on line 434: Studies done in 1994 by Temple Grandin, and another in 1992 by Flemming Bager, showed that when the animals were slaughtered in a comfortable position they appeared to give no resistance and none of the animals attempted to pull away their head. The studies concluded that a shechita cut "probably results in minimal discomfort" because the cattle stand still and do not resist a comfortable head restraint device.
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 75: Takakannesta: "Ollilla on uutisia, he saavat vahvistusta suoraan Saxasta, 2 kovaa SS-upseeria." Tämän päivän Törni tulee suoraan Texasista Herkkules-vaunulla. Kovia NATO-upseereja. Hei tähän sopii taustamusiikixi Maikki Länsiön ja Esa Saarisen Huuakotti! Taistelu Chickaduua joella matujen ja hottentottien välillä! Kadetraalissa oli viileää, lattialla puuvillainen vyö. E. Saarisen isävainaja oli Callen ikätoveri ja ampui mokkerina konekiväärillä ryssiä Suomen hyökkäyssodassa. Sixi kai Eski oli niin innostunut veteraaneista. Kyllä pikkunen poikakin ladata saa, kun saa allensa Vickers tankin. Vickers oli brittitankki jota valmistettiin lisenssillä Neukuissa. Niitä oli suomalaisilla sotasaaliina. Vaunuja käytettiin ensimmäisen kerran Mantšuriassa japanilaisia vastaan vuosina 1934 ja 1935. Omat koirat purivat! Törniä Vickersin tornissa on pidetty varhaisimpana kenttäoloissa käytettynä taistelurobottina.
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 91: Svenskarna är förmögnare än finländarna, säger Hobla sorgset. Svartskallarna är en vattenledare. Sedan 2010 har svenskarna mera skuld, mindre bostadsegendom, mera aktier och fonder, och inkomstfördelningen är ojämnare. Läs: just som i Amerika, är de svenska rika ännu rikare och de mångfärgade invandrarna bor i hyreshålor, lodar på gatorna, skjuter varann och säljer knark. Den tunna blå linjen skiljer dem frän de förmögnare urinvånarna. Tack svartskalle! Tusen tack för hjälp! Här får du tre kronor, köp dej lite skunk din skunk!
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 117: Izenäistymisen alusta lähtien ja etenkin punakapinan kukistuttua kansaamme ruokittiin vittumaisella tavalla vihaamaan kaikkea venäläistä ja erityisesti Neuvostoliittoa. Vihamielistä suhtautumista pönkitettiin aina talvisodan alkuun asti taantumuksellisen ja soi-disant "vapaamielisen" lehdistön, koulujen ja radion välityksellä, lyhyesti sanottuna: kaikin mahdollisin tavoin. Kun vihan myrkyllä täytetyt painostuskeinot eivät ihan riittäneet pokerryttämään kansamme terveitä mielipiteitä, nujerrettiin kaikenlainen ennakkoluulottomuus ja objektiivinen suhtautuminen itäista naapuriamme kohtaan voimakeinoin. Suomen ja Neuvostoliiton valisten ystävällisten ja luonnollisten suhteiden puolestapuhujia vainottiin, heidän organisaationsa lakkautettiin, ja tuhannet kansalaiset tuomittiin pitkin kuritushuonetuomioihin. Silloiset valtaapitävat tuomitsivat ja väkivalloin nujersivat kaikenlaisen poliittisen toiminnan, johon ei kuulunut ryssävihaa.
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 396: Pugnabit primo fortassis, et 'improbe' dicet: Vänkää enste se vastaan, "törkimys" huutaa,
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 407: et inprobitas muneris instar habet. Pakolla painettu palkinto lämmittää pyrstöä silti.
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 465: My son is 27, suffering from chronic depression, in a low-paying dead-end job without the faintest idea of how to get out of it. His life is an unending continuum of unhappiness and job dissatisfaction.
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 471: Sorry, son. I don’t know what to do. I am a software developer 2000-present. My name is "Jack Claxton". In 1995 when I begat my son I had other low-paying dead-end jobs. Now *that* is really sad. I understand my son's disappointment in his dad.
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 475: This really hits home for me. I am exactly 27 years old, I work two somewhat dead-end, low-paying jobs (warehouse at Floor and Decor and a DSP for the developmentally disabled). Last year, I tried to commit suicide in my car after a long period of living in my car. The car didn't survive the suicide attempt, but I did. Surprisingly, I only got a few bumps and bruises from the accident, but nothing major. I was in a psych ward for 2 weeks. After that, I had to move back in with my parents in their one bedroom apartment. I hate them for all that they put me through this past year, but I'm grateful for their conditional love. My presence in my dad's life counts for a lot, especially since he probably feels like a failure like you and me.
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 483: I guess your parents probably don’t judge you and are glad to have some help at home - washing the toilet and taking out the garbage and such. They probably worry much more when you don't. One little piece of advice anyway: I do suspect that to cultivate self-discipline is a good start. Not to pamper yourself, you stupid lout. And don't forget to take the garbage with you as you go.
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 489: One word for the wise and depressed men described in this thread: VASECTOMY. Get it! I got it. Too late tho. Highly unlikely that creating another being entirely dependent on you for 18 years is going to do much to change your mood. Don’t have kids unless parenthood is your top priority and ambition in life. Kurt Cobain was right: it’s a setup!. Plant a house. Build a tree! Take a beer! Have a cow! Watch some TV! Join Depressive Quora!
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 511: Having depression in a dead end, low paying job is terrible. When you're in a low paying job and depressed, you tell yourself things will get better when your prospects are better.
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 513: Having a high paying job with everything else in your life going great is terrific.
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 514: When you're in a great job with great people around, you tell yourself it' s all going to go worse in the end. That's a special type of bliss most people don't know exists.
xxx/ellauri234.html on line 520: Good for you! My son has had been through various phases of medication (serotonine re-uptake inhibitors?) but at the moment he is self-medicating with grass. I do think that he is trying to do as well as he can, though. Sometimes he gives me a doobie from his stash, I give him beer and we watch some TV together.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 213: Their homely joys, and destiny obscure; Heidän kodikkaat ilonsa ja kohtalonsa hämärä;
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 239: Chill Penury repress'd their noble rage, Chill Penury tukahdutti heidän jalon raivonsa,
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 267: Far from the madding crowd's* ignoble strife, Kaukana väkivaltaisen väkijoukon piittaamattomasta kiistasta
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 268: Their sober wishes never learn'd to stray; Heidän raittiit toiveensa eivät koskaan oppineet eksymään;
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 345: Cornhillissä 26. joulukuuta 1716 syntynyt Gray oli viides Philip ja Dorothy Antrobus Grayn 12 lapsesta ja ainoa, joka selvisi lapsenkengistä. Hänen isänsä, väkivaltaisuuksiin syyllistynyt, pahoinpiteli vaimoaan; Dorothy jätti hänet jossain vaiheessa, mutta Philip uhkasi ajaa hiäntä takaa ja kostaa hiänelle, ja hiän palasi hänen luokseen. Vuosina 1725-1734 Thomas Gray osallistui Etoniin, missä hän tapasi Richard Westin ja Horace Tadpolen, voimakkaan Whig-ministerin Sir Robert Walpolen pojan. Vuonna 1734 Gray astui Peterhouse Collegeen, Cambridgen yliopistoon. Neljä vuotta myöhemmin hän jätti Cambridgen ilman tutkintoa aikoen lukea lakia Lontoon Inner Templessä. Sen sijaan hän ja Horace Walpole purjehtivat Doverista 29. maaliskuuta 1739 Manner-kiertueelle. Kaksikko riiteli Reggiossa Italiassa toukokuussa 1741; Gray jatkoi kiertuetta yksin ja palasi Lontooseen syyskuussa. Marraskuussa 1741 Greyn isä kuoli; Grayn säilyneissä kirjeissä ei ole mainintaa tästä tapahtumasta.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 353: Vizi kyllä brittimaa on väärällään sodomiitteja! Nahkaklarinetteja kuin salpausselällä! Fagotteja kokonainen orkesteri! Ffion Hague, the wife of Foreign Secretary William Hague, is now hoping to repeat her success with her latest publication, a book documenting what was believed to be the illicit gay love affair of an 18th century poet with the son of Britain’s first Prime Minister, Robert Walpole. Tää kiivas suklaaosastolla asiointi on 1 epätasa-arvoisen yhteiskunnan piirteitä. Yläluokan äveriäät herrat naivat toisiaan pitääxeen omaisuuden kasassa. Sama ilmiö muinaisessa Kreikassa ja Roomassa.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 505: Demokraterna har sina egna problem med att hålla enad front. De är dock färre än bland republikanerna. Den progressiva falangen i partiet skickade förra veckan ett brev till president Joe Biden där de uppmanade honom att ändra strategi och förhandla direkt med Ryssland för att nå fred i Ukraina.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 611: Thee the voice, the dance, obey, Sinä ääni, tanssi, tottele,
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 728: Vuorossa on nyt seikkailu, jossa laivallinen hampaisiin saakka aseistettuja brittitörkimyxiä on siviilien ranskalaisressukoiden kimpussa jotka ajelevat riisipussilla. Varo ranuja, varoittaa amiraali, tai ne valtaavat riisipussin takaisin pikemmin kuin ehdit sanoa Jack Robinson. What???
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 730: When referring to Jack Robinson, it is used to represent quickness.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 778: Your robes are green and purple – there's a crest upon your head; Sun mekko on sinivihreä, on hieno diadeemi;
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 798: Lewis Carroll, a notorious spider in little girls' parlour, replaced a notorious negro minstrel song with The Mock Turtle's Song (also known as the "Lobster Quadrille"), a parody of Howitt's poem that mimics the meter and rhyme scheme and parodies the first line, as well as the subject matter, of the original, namely sugar daddy talk. Lewis was a past master in that sport.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 802: obucket.com/albums/b164/herberbe/ch/mockturtle.png" />
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 812: So they sat down, and nobody spoke for some minutes. Alice thought to herself, `I don't see how he can even finish, if he doesn't begin.' But she waited patiently.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 816: These words were followed by a very long silence, broken only by an occasional exclamation of `Hjckrrh!' from the Gryphon, and the constant heavy sobbing of the Mock Turtle. Alice was very nearly getting up and saying, `Thank you, sir, for your interesting story,' but she could not help thinking there must be more to come, so she sat still and said nothing.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 818: `When we were little,' the Mock Turtle went on at last, more calmly, though still sobbing a little now and then, `we went to school in the sea. The master was an old Turtle--we used to call him Tortoise--'
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 828: The Lobster-Quadrille by Lewis Carroll - Famous poems, famous poets.
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 832: See how eagerly the lobsters and the turtles all advance! Kazo miten innokkaasti hummerit ja kilpikonnat etenee!
xxx/ellauri235.html on line 838: When they take us up and throw us, with the lobsters, out to sea!" Kun heitin kilon hauen pappilaan, maalaismaisemaan!
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 100: Netflixin Intialaisessa detektiivissäkin on sevverran piilorasismia että kanadalaispoliisi joka on perimältään itäintiaani paritetaan Mumbayn maatiaiselle nupopäälle, ja sen Bob-niminen ayrshire lehmä aisapari arjalaisrotuiselle wop Rocksterille.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 134: Among modern Western male heteronormal scholars, Sappho´s sexuality is still debated – André Lardinois has described it as the "Great Sappho Question". Early translators of Sappho sometimes heterosexualised her poetry. Ambrose Philips´ 1711 translation of the Ode to Aphrodite portrayed the object of Sappho´s desire as male, a reading that was followed by virtually every other translator of the poem until the twentieth century, while in 1781 Alessandro Verri interpreted fragment 31 as being about Sappho´s love for a guy named Phaon. Friedrich Gottlieb Welcker argued that Sappho´s feelings for other women were "entirely idealistic and non-sensual", while Karl Otfried Müller wrote that fragment 31 described "nothing but a friendly affection": Glenn Most comments that "one wonders what language Sappho would have used to describe her feelings if they had been ones of sexual excitement", if this theory were correct. By 1970, it would be argued that the same poem contained "proof positive of [Sappho´s] lesbianism".
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 136: Today, it is generally accepted that Sappho´s poetry portrays homoerotic feelings: as Sandra Boehringer puts it, her works "clearly celebrate eros between women". Toward the end of the twentieth century, though, some scholars began to reject the question of whether or not Sappho was a lesbian – Glenn Most wrote that Sappho herself "would have had no idea what people mean when they call her nowadays a homosexual", André Lardinois stated that it is "nonsensical" to ask whether Sappho was a lesbian, and Page duBois calls the question a "particularly obfuscating debate". WTF? Pelottaako äijiä ajatus pillua lipsuvasta Psapfasta? Vai onko ne vaan mustasukkiaisia?
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 140: None of Sappho´s own poetry mentions her teaching, and the earliest testimonium to support the idea of Sappho as a teacher comes from Ovid (a notorious nincompoop), six centuries after Sappho´s lifetime. Despite these problems, many newer interpretations of Sappho´s social role are still based on this idea. In these interpretations, Sappho was involved in the ritual education of girls, for instance as a trainer of choruses of girls. Niikö Ailin kerhotoimintaa, osallistumista kylän sukupuolielämän monipuolistamiseen.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 168: Pietismin ohjelmallisena perustana pidetään Philipp Jakob Spenerin vuonna 1675 julkaisemaa Pia Desideria-kirjoitusta, joka julkaistiin esipuheena Johann Arndtin Vom Wahren Christenthum-laitoksessa. Arndstin teokset kuuluivat pietistisessä liikkeessä luettuihin kirjoihin. Opetuksissa kuvattiin, kuinka yksilön tuli elää uskovana. Liikkeen painopiste on yksilön sisäisessä muutoksessa.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 175: Philipp Jakob Spener (13. tammikuuta 1635 Ribeauvillé, Elsass – 5. helmikuuta 1705) oli saksalainen luterilainen teologi, joka tunnetaan "pietismin isänä". Spener ajoi saksankielisissä maissa protestanttisen hengenelämän uudistamista. Johtamissaan kokouksissa Spener rohkaisia maallikkoja käyttämään puheenvuoroja ja osallistumaan yleisiin kokouksiin.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 179: Philipp Jakob Spenerin keskeiseksi tukijaksi nousi Saksin vaaliruhtinas, jonka hovissa Dresdenissä hän toimi ylihovisaarnaajana. Myöhemmin hän siirtyi papiksi Berliiniin Brandenburgin vaaliruhtinaan kutsusta.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 219: Johann Arndt (27. joulukuuta 1555 Edderitz, Saksa – 11. toukokuuta 1621 Celle, Saksa) oli saksalainen luterilainen pappi ja hartauskirjailija, jota pidetään pietismin edelläkävijänä ja josta "pietismin isä" Philipp Jakob Spener katsoi liikkeen saaneen alkunsa. Arndt toimi kirkollisissa viroissa useissa paikoissa, viimeksi Braunschweig-Lüneburgin ruhtinaskunnan ylisuperintendenttinä. Hänen tunnetuin teoksensa on Neljä kirjaa totisesta kristillisyydestä, joka on käännetty lähes kaikille Euroopan kielille.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 504: Sinun obeesi vartalosi antautuu käsivarsilleni ja kaukana värisevät siniset planeetat”.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 580: On lähdön hetki. Oi hylätty! Improbatur tuli!
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 590: Pablo Neruda, alkuperäiseltä nimeltään Ricardo Eliecer Neftalí Reyes Basoalto (1904-1972) oli Nobel-sertifioitu chileläinen runoilija, diplomaatti ja kommunistipuolueen poliitikko. Nerudaa pidetään yhtenä 1900-luvun tärkeimmistä runoilijoista ja latinalaisamerikkalaisista senaattoreista, lukuunottamatta Vargas Llosaa ja Pinochetia.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 609: Vysvětloval jim oblohu, Hän puhui taivaista
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 674: Neruda sai 1971 myös Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon. Ennen Nerudaa Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinto oli myönnetty viidelle espanjankieliselle ja kahdelle latinalaisamerikkalaiselle kirjailijalle. Mutta monelleko kommarille? Jukka-Pekka Sartrekin kieltäytyi, no se nyt olikin pelkkä ex-kommari. Mä veikkaan että tää oli lohtupalkinto Solzhenizynistä suuttuneille punikeille.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 684: Neruda’s death certificate established the cause of death as cancer cachexia, which involves significant weight loss, but the forensic specialists unanimously found that to be impossible. “That cannot be correct,” said Dr. Niels Morling, of the University of Copenhagen’s department of forensic medicine, who participated in the analysis. “There was no indication of cachexia. He was an obese man at the time of death. All other circumstances in his last phase of life pointed to some kind of infection.” Neruda was infected with the Staphylococcus aureus bacterium, which can be highly toxic and result in death if modified.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 706: El talento poético de Neruda es indudable. En 1971 recibió el Premio Nobel de Literatura y ha sido admirado y reconocido por su grandísimo miembro.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 781: piensa menos en tus problemas
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 782: y más en tu trabajo y tus problemas
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 785: más grande que el más grande de los obstáculos,
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 821: nobis, cum semel occidit brevis lux,
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 864: Si el psicoanálisis freudiano veía a la persona desde sus conductas problemáticas y el conductismo visualizaba a la personas como seres pasivos, es decir, que no tenían demasiadas opciones de influir en el entorno. La visión de Carl Rogers y el humanismo, en cambio, era totalmente distinta, porque el ser humano es visto como un individuo activo y dueño de su propia realización. Para Rogers, una persona que presta atención al proceso de valoración orgánica es una persona plenamente funcional o autorrealizada.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 886: Sin duda, Maslow se asocia al concepto de autorrealización, porque en su teoría habla de las necesidades que tenemos las personas de desarrollarnos, de buscar nuestro máximo potencial. Y es que, según éste, las personas tienen un deseo innato para autorrealizarse, para ser lo que quieran ser, y tienen la capacidad capacidad para perseguir sus objetivos de manera autónoma y libre.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 887: En cierto modo, el modo en el que un individuo enfoque su autorrealización se corresponderá al tipo de personalidad que manifieste en su día a día. Eso implica que para Maslow la personalidad está relacionada con los aspectos motivacionales que tienen que ver con los objetivos y las situaciones que vive cada ser humano; no es algo estático que permanezca en el interior de la cabeza de las personas y se manifieste unidireccionalmente, de adentro hacia afuera, tal y como podría criticarse de algunas concepciones reduccionistas y deterministas de este fenómeno psicológico.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 889: Las implicaciones de esto son claras: para estudiar la personalidad hay que conocer también el contexto en el que habitan las personas y el modo en el que este responde a las necesidades motivacionales de los individuos. Centrarse simplemente en administrar varios test para obtener una puntuación no nos da una visión acertada sobre esto, ya que se parte de un sesgo al considerar que la personalidad es lo que pueda ser captado por estas pruebas de recogida de datos. Se trata de un punto de vista parecido al que aplican al ámbito de las capacidades mentales psicólogos como Howard Gardner y Robert J. Sternberg, críticos con la concepción psicométrica de la inteligencia.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 892: Maslow piensa que alcanzar las necesidades de autorrealización está en las manos de todo el mundo, sin embargo, son pocos los que lo consiguen. Las personas que logran satisfacer sus necesidades de autorrealización son personas autorrealizadas. Ahora bien, Maslow afirma que menos del 1% de la población pertenecen a esta clase de individuos.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 897: Perciben la realidad de manera más clara y objetiva
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 901: Piensan que las causas de los problemas son externas
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 920: Si quieres saber más sobre este tipo de personas, puedes leer nuestro artículo:
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 942: Puedes saber más sobre la teoría de las necesidades humanas en nuestro post: Pirámide de Maslow: la jerarquía de las necesidades humanas. Vanitatum vanitas, omnia sunt vana. Nil sub sole stabile, in vita humana.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 953: La persona, según el humanismo, es una pirsona pirsonalmente. Ciertas corrientes de la psicología han estado asociadas a una visión pesimista del ser humano. Por ejemplo, el psicoanálisis de Sigmund Freud presenta una explicación de la psique en la que los deseos inconscientes y su choque con las normas sociales gobiernan nuestro comportamiento, y el conductismo norteamericano de 1950 habia sido acusado de presentar a las personas como máquinas que reaccionan ante estímulos externos.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 955: Sin embargo, los psicólogos humanistas como Roger Rabbit propusieron algunas ideas sobre los procesos mentales en los que se enfatiza la libertad de los individuos a la hora de tomar la rumba de sus vidas. Según ellos, ni los factores biológicos ni los ambientales son determinantes en nuestro comportamiento, y no nos "arrastran" irremediablemente hacia ciertos tipos de comportamiento. En resumidas cuentas, no eran deterministas, eran indeterministas.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 957: En concreto, Roger Rabbit creía que la personalidad de cada persona se desarrollaba según el modo en el que consigue ir acercándose a (o alejándose de) sus objetivos vitales, sus metas.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 963: Las personas altamente funcionales se caracterizan por estar en un proceso constante de auto-actualización, es decir, búsqueda de un ajuste casi perfecto con los objetivos y las metas vitales. Este proceso de desarrollo personal se encuentra en el presente, por lo que siempre está en funcionamiento. De este modo, la personalidad de las personas altamente funcionales es, para Mr. Rabbit, un marco en el que fluye en tiempo real un modo de vivir la vida que se adapta a las circunstancias constantemente.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 1023: Väitöskirjatyönsä aikana hän teki tutkimustyötä Rochesterissa sijaitsevassa Society for Cruelty to Children -tutkimuslaitoksessa ja eteni laitoksen johtajaksi vuonna 1930. Vuonna 1939 hän julkaisi yhdessä tri Mengelen kanssa kirjan The Clinical Treatment of the Problem Child.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 1040: Rogersin vaikutteiden yhtenä lähteenä on mainittava Heideggerin fenomenologia. Fenomenologiset vaikutteet näkyvat erityisesti siinä, että Rogers pyrkii selittämään ihmisen toimintaa hänen välittömästä "minä minä" kokemuksestaan käsin, kun vaikkapa psykoanalyysi kuvaa ihmistä pääosin objektiivisesti. Näin ihmisten toiminta tulee ymmärrettäväksi heille izelleen, mikäli se vain suhteutetaan hänen henkilökohtaiseen kokemusmaailmaansa! Mitä väliä vaikka se olisi päin persettä, kuha asiakas vaan on tyytyväinen! Asiakas on aina oikeassa jos sillä on millä maxaa rrrunsaasti.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 1061: Tämän tyyppiset yksilöt eivät ole realistisia ja käyttävät optimismia paetakseen turhautumista ja sitä tosiasiaa, että heidän on kohdattava epämiellyttävä todellisuus. Kasvaaksemme ihmisinä kuin Bobin puoliso meidän on kohdattava pelkomme ja olla suvaitsevaisia turhautumiselle, muuten emme hyödy elämänkokemuksista, jotka saavat meidät kärsimään, mikä pitkällä tähtäimellä mahdollistaa vahvan ja valmistautuneen persoonallisuuden kehittymisen tilanteisiin, joista pidämme vähiten, kuten pakkotyö volttikuskina nollasopimuxella.
xxx/ellauri237.html on line 1074: Falski optimismi voi tuntua hyvältä motivointityökalulta, mutta se ei johdu siitä, vaan siitä että odotukset ja tavoitteet ovat kohtuuttomia. Väärän optimismin käyttäminen tavoitteiden saavuttamiseksi voi tuoda kielteisiä seurauksia. Tästä syystä on aina tärkeää, että asettamamme tavoitteet ovat saavutettavissa, realistisia, selkeitä ja mitattavissa, kuten selitimme artikkelissamme: objetivos-psicologia-deportiva">Tavoitteiden asettamisen tärkeys urheilupsykologiassa.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 50: Wayne W. Dyer on izehoitopersoona, joka on tullut mainituxi toisaalla esimerkkinä ESFP-persoonallisuudesta. ESFP (extroverted sensing feeling perceiving) is one of the sixteen personality types of the Myers-Briggs Type Inventory (MBTI) test. ESFPs operate from the principle that “all the world’s a stage” — and they want to be the stars. ESFP on realistinen sopeutuja ihmissuhteissa. ESFP on jenkein ja ämmämäisin tyypeistä: öykkäri ketku touho ääliö. Tai positiivisemmin, "Free-spirited and fun-loving people persons" kuten Kinsella. ESFPs are enthusiastic about having new experiences and meeting new people. They are generally warm and adaptable realists who go with the flow. ESFP authors include Tony Robbins, Wayne Dyer, Deepak Chopra, Bill Clinton, and Paulo "Kani" Coelho. Learn more about how ESFPs write somewhere else. Eli tämä paasaus keskittyy vain Wile E. Coyoteen alias Wayne W. Dyeriin.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 175: I am sure, as you probably are too, that there were Jewish girls who got pregnant outside of marriage. It is no stretch of the imagination that Roman soldiers could have raped them. Since men are men, I do not doubt that incest existed in Jesus’ community. But Jesus had nothing at all to say about these things. The only examples we have are of his being aware of adultery and prostitution. But there is no mention of abortion to handle rape or incest. It is far more likely that if a girl was pregnant, the solution was to marry her off quickly. We have the example of Jesus’ mother Mary being married quickly to Joseph when she was found to be pregnant. I suspect other parents would do the same.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 324: Onhan noita väkivaltaisia varakkaita konnia koti-Suomessakin, just äsken joku yxityinen lääkäriasemalääkäri nirhasi vielä varakkaamman finanssialalla toimivan vaimonsa, kääri mattoon ja/tai muovisäkkeihin ja oli kuskaamassa Volvon takapakkaan kun poliisit ehti hätiin. Tää tapahtui siis Pietarinkadun ja Raatimiehenkadun kulmassa, talossa jossa mäkin lienen ollut jakamassa luukkuihin Usareita, Hesareita ja Hoblia. Naapurit vakuuttaa raatovarixille että kyllä tällä seudulla on ihan turvallista asua, nytkin on meillä turvallisen tuntuisesti skoudet pihassa.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 361: Holtti on xenofobinen varsinkin polakkien suhteen, Maggi on muka aivan pölähtänyt ääliö. Annen hahmo muka ei "oikeasti" ole peliriippuvainen kuten Harry Hole ei ole "oikeasti" alkkis ja narkkismömmö, ne vois lopettaa milloin tahansa muttei huvita. Vittu mitä törkimyxiä, Anne siis ja Jonne. Osakekeinottelu oli monimutkaista peliä joka tuotti saman tyydytyxen kuin häpykielen näpelöinti ja vihamiesten nirhaus. EFK, siinähän ne vanhat tuttavamme taasen on.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 376: The Walking Dead is an American post-apocalyptic horror television series based on the comic book series of the same name by Robert Kirkman, Tony Moore, and Charlie Adlard—together forming the core of The Walking Dead franchise. The series features a large ensemble cast as survivors of a zombie apocalypse trying to stay alive under near-constant threat of attacks from zombies known as "walkers" (among other nicknames). With the collapse of modern civilization, these survivors must confront other human survivors who have formed groups and communities with their own sets of laws and morals, sometimes leading to open, hostile conflict between them. Tää on varmaan Homer Simpsonin zombieiden esikuva.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 444: Ei vittu TAAS Pepsi Maxia. Kilkilkil sanoo Annen kassakone. Oikeasti Anne! Aikuisten oikeasti! Jos tulit vaan laukomaan näitä kliseitä voit samantien häipyä. Whodunit? No Sven Feldin oli aina kadehtinut Kong Haakonia. Tai joku saxalainen. Tai veli venäläinen. Ja sitten on se mongoloidi Jussi Kolkka. Ainiin sehän tukehtui lumihankeen jollain Åsetilla. Vanja-eno oli läskiintynyt sitten käsipallopäivien. Se oli kliinisesti obeesi, muttei morbidisti. Selma vääntäytyi Vanja-enon otteesta jalat harallaan ja "nappasi" pusakkansa naulakosta. Ja muuten rakkaat lukijat: Pepsi Max on sokeritonta! Sitä olis kannattanut läskin Vanja-enonkin litkiä!
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 515: Tieraato Bob ja ja murhavarixet
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 517: Psykiatri "Bob" Tikkanen nyrhi hengiltä punkeron varakkaan Vicky vaimonsa Ullanlinnan Raatimiehenkadulla. Siitä nousi mahtava ilo valtameediassa ja etenkin somessa. Murha-infon varixet pomppivat haaskalle alta aikayxikön ja nokkivat kinastellen tieraatoa. Ihan turha lukea skandinaavisia murhakirjoja, kyllä ullanlinnalaiset kermaperseet ja somevarixet hoitaa homman ilmaisexi jezulleen!
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 551: Hmmm... Henrikin isä oli arkkitehti Robert Tikkanen, virallisesti kai Toivo Robert Tikkanen. Hän on muuten Wikipedian mukaan suunnitellut rakennuksen, joka sijaitsee osoitteessa Pietarinkatu 1 – Raatimiehenkatu 4... Alkkispersläpi-isä voisi selittää pojan tutkimuskiinnostukset. Ehkä narsismikin on periytyvää. Olisiko jopa Henrikin ja Märtan poika? Ei, liian nuori. Niillä oli Robert poika mutta se olis jo eläkeikiä. Pitääpä penkoa luettavaksi noita Märta ja Henrik Tikkasen kirjoja, jospa jotain selviäisi tämän mysteerin taakse. Jos oikein muistan kymmenien vuosien takaisia asioita niin aikamoinen perhehelvetti tais olla kyseessä.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 553: Roope asuu Henrik Tikkasen isän Robertin piirtämässä talossa. Taitaa olla aika lailla geenipainolastia Roopen suonissa:
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 558: Summeritaulussa Tikkasen ja Westinin lisäksi kolmaskin nimi, ilmeisesti uhrin lapsen/lapsien. Oliko kenties Pasternack vaiko vallan Bobin exän nimi?
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 560: Eniveis, kyllä tässä jo jotain uskaltaa lyödä vetoa, että tohtori Roope Bob on arkkitehti Toivo Robertin jälkeläisiä. Itse olen sen verran vahingoniloista sorttia, että pidän ihan sopivana, että ns merkkisuvun kronikkaan saadaan vähintään alaviitteeksi henkirikoksesta narahtanut. Terveystalossa ainakin toimii psykiatrina, ei näköjään saa aikoja seuraavaan 60 päivään 😏 Ilta-Pulu haastatteli helsinkiläistä miestä, joka oli käynyt epäillyn etävastaanotolla työuupumukseen liittyen viime keväänä. – Hän vaikutti sellaiselta rennolta ja jopa hyväntuuliselta, mies kertoo. Mies kuvailee, että lääkäristä jäi ammattitaitoinen kuva. Tapaaminen oli "jopa yllättävän miellyttävä", miehelle oli helppo jutella. Kellekkähän sitä menisi seuraavaxi... Ei se halpa ollut...
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 595: Vuonna 1975 syntynyttä naista kuvaillaan erittäin pidetyksi kollegaksi, joka levitti ympärilleen iloa monen monta kiloa. Lapset eivät olleet yhteisiä. Ei ollut Hankenilta valmistunut. LinkedInin mukaan Arcada-ammattikorkeakoulusta. Sieltä löytyy työhistoriaakin. Osake- ja kiinteistöomistuxia. Merenrantakiinteistö. Mäyräkoira. Bobilla saattoi olla kassakriisi uhkaamassa. Tai sitten ei: sen firma oli muka tehnyt 200K voittoa. Iltalehti tietää kertoa että naimisiin on menty 2021 ja avioehto löytyy.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 601:
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 640: Olisiko Roope-Bobilla alkanu itsellä psyyke heitellä jo 2014? Jodelissa useampi kertoo olleensa kyseisen psykiatrin asiakkaana ja että syyskuussa ajat on peruttu tai siirretty toiselle psykiatrin jäätyä sairaslomalle (tai ainakin sairaslomana se on kerrottu). Jo ennen tätä on kuulemma ollut huonoa asioiden hoitoa, mm. hoitamatta jätettyjä soittoaikoja. Kertoisi jo jostain pidempiaikaisesta ongelmasta eikä vain äkillisestä kilahduksesta.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 652: T. Tikkanen on JulkiTerhikin mukaan syntynyt v. 1951, psykoterapeutti ja psykologi. Voisiko se olla Roopen isä? Toivo Robertin puolisot olivat Fazer, Vitali ja Hertell. Lastensa puolisot olivat Cavonius, Etrock ja Wahlroos. Rappeutunutta ruozalaista rahaylimystöä.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 700: Uhrilta ei löytynyt verokoneesta tietoja. Bob vaikuttaa olevan varsin keskituloinen tohtori.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 718: Nyt kun kerta porukalla ihmetellään ja arvotaan uhrin elopainoa, niin tässä myös Roope Bobin habitus. Sanoisin, että aika normikroppainen, tahi trendikkäästi ilmaistuna dadbod. Mutta rimpulahinteläksi en sanoisi, kuva julkaistu heinäkuussa 2022.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 757: "Hänvisande till utslaget Nr 8027 av Länsstyrelsen i Nylands län skall vårt minderåriga barn Roopes förnamn vara Bob.
xxx/ellauri239.html on line 792: Joku mietti tuota Bob nimeä, niin sen verran vanhat lehdet tiesivät kertoa, että vuonna 1994 on Helsingin Norsenista kirjoittanut ylioppilaaksi kaksoissiskonsa kanssa Bob Tikkanen. Eli tuolloin ei ole mainittu lainkaan nimeä Roope. Onko sitten ottanut sen itse käyttöön myöhemmin, vai eikö ole vain jostain syystä tuolloin mainittu, sitä ei tarina kerro.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 64: Netistä ei hevin löydy selostusta Al Qaidan WTCn tornien kaatamisen 20-vuotisjuhlista. Kaipa sellainenkin on pidetty. Amerikka juhlisti muistopäivää tappamalla Obaman korjaan Osaman ja nipun muita rättipäitä vihamiehiä laivastohylkeillä. Osama correction Obama told them, "Job well done." Vitun lakukeppi.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 134: Guan Moye (simplified Chinese: 管谟业; traditional Chinese: 管謨業; pinyin: Guǎn Móyè; born 17 February 1955) on toistaisexi ainoa aito viirusilmä kiinalainen nobelisti, länsimaisittain vaan Mo Yan, jonka romaanin Punainen durra kahden luvun pohjalta on elokuvakin, nim. Punainen pelto (1987). Länsimaissa Mo Yania on verrattu muun muassa Franz Kafkaan ja Joseph Helleriin. Yhteiskunnallisia kysymyksiä kuvatessaan hän käyttää maagisen realismin keinoja.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 140: Mo Yanin teosten ruotsintaja Göran Malmqvist kuuluu Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon valintakomiteaan, mitä paheksuttiin monissa ruotsalaisviestimissä. Hänen esitettiin olleen jäävi, mistä hän tuohtui. Mutta tuohta tuli silti ihan kivasti.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 159: He is best known for his semi-autobiographical novel Ask the Dust (1939) about the life of Arturo Bandini, a struggling writer in Depression-era Los Angeles. It is widely considered the great Los Angeles novel, and is one in a series of four, published between 1938 and 1985, that are now collectively called "The Bandini Quartet". Ask the Dust was adapted into a 2006 film starring Colin Farrell and Salma Hayek.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 161: Ask the Dust is a 2006 romantic drama film based on the 1939 book Ask the Dust by John Fante. The film was written and directed by Robert Towne. Tom Cruise (with Paula Wagner and Cruise/Wagner Productions) served as one of the film's producers. The film was released on a limited basis on March 17, 2006, and was entered into the 28th Moscow International Film Festival. It was filmed almost entirely in South Africa with the use of stages to portray Los Angeles. The film received negative to mixed reviews from critics. The review aggregator Rotten Tomatoes reported that 65% of critics gave the film negative reviews, based on 104 reviews. The site's consensus states: "Though Hayek is luminous, Farrell seems miscast, and the film fails to capture the gritty, lively edginess of the book upon which it's based."
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 190: – Mamma och jag hade inte samma kynne. Hon tyckte nog att jag var som pappa, en opålitlig konstnärstyp. Det störde hennes borgerlighet tror jag. De hade inte så mycket tid heller, hon och min fosterfar, med hela den stora familjen och varsitt jobb. Ändå hade de manglade lakan, jag minns korgarna de kom bärande på, där alla lakan låg! Egentligen tycker Gunilla att hon aldrig varit barn. Hon fick bli vuxen från början, dels i och med att hon var äldst.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 235: Hoblan ainut edes jotenkin lukukelpoinen sarakenikkari Fredrik Sonck on saanut potkut lehdestä varmaan mädännäisen Erja Ala-Tuuhosen toimesta. Viele vehen vasemmalle ja se on game over. Sama kohtalo saattaa olla edessä hiukka liikaa tuuleen kääntyneellä ex-talousliberaali Torstenilla, joka kehtaa epäillä charitymiljardöörien motia näillä sanoilla:
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 239: Har du ett blödande hjärta - gör då karriär som bankir eller börsmäklare, i stället för att ägna vå ditt liv åt att jobba som vårdare, läkare eller direkt inom hjälparbete. Det lukrativa, möjligen etiskt tvivelaktiga jobbet du gör skulle ju hur som helst ha utförts av "någon annan", eventuellt mindre givmild person. Förträng eventuella samvetskval, se till att tjäna storkovan. Använd sedan ditt kapital (eller intäkter i alla fall) för att rädda världen, eller åtminstone så många liv som plånboken tillåter. Vem vet: sen kan du känna dig en smula som Oskar Schindler.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 314: Brad: Nearly all 21st century western women under 40 are crazy, and disloyal. This is the 1st time in human history where women have had this much power. What's the result you ask? 70 percent of marriage ending in divorce; 90 percent of which are filed by women. 50 percent of men say they regret marriage too the woman their currently with. Why might you ask? Cause they're on their best behavior until they have the money then they hulk smash you into oblivion. 94 percent child support going from male to female, and 92 percent of alimony. The old saying is the woman got married thinking the man would change and the man got married hoping she never would. They were both disappointed in the end. I'll let you decide which genders thought process is more Nobel. For me it's obvious.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 318: Justsum Nobodee: Sucker!!! This had to have been written by a collapsed narcissist. Poor poor narcissist, finally alone after shitting on everyone, destroying children, screaming, lying, trickery, snickering, selfish, back stabbing, manipulation, hypocrites, humiliating innocent people, stealing other peoples children. oh poor them. Bless their heart. They are the victim here. Just give them more attention.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 344: Gjennom ungdomsskolen oppdager Henry de mange gledene ved alkohol og onani. Når Henry begynner på videregående skole, får faren ham til å begynne ved en privat skole hvor han passer enda mindre inn blant alle de andre bortskjemte rike ungdommene med deres prangende, fargerike, konvertible kjøretøy og vakre kjærester. For å gjøre saken verre, utvikler Chinaski fryktelig kviser så alvorlig at han må gjennomgå smertefulle, og for det meste ineffektive, behandlinger. Han blir derfor et slags menneskelig marsvin for forskjellige eksperimenter tenkt ut av uinteresserte doktorer som egentlig ikke bryr seg om hans velvære. Leseren følger til slutt Chinaski til college, og leser om hans ulykkede forsøk på å finne en meningsfylt jobb. Så han begynte at skrive skitt istedet.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 350: Tammiston Kontista olis saanut Bukowskin päiväkirjaa pätkän pikkurahalla, Robert Crumbin taiteellis-ilottomasti vielä kuvittamana. Selasin vähän, oli se niin narsistista paskaa ettei napannut. Se oli muka 71-vuotiaana niin skrode että olis pannut turpaan puolta pienemmälle miehelle. Suvaizen epäillä. No joka tapauxessa ei tullut kauppoja.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 378: Tørjokking kan være digg det, men jeg vil vel tro at de fleste er enige i at en blowjob er bedre. Ihvertfall syns jeg det ;)
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 396: Cain Noble-Davies
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 546: No eipä tosta sen enempää, tollastahan se tuppaa olemaan. Bukowski's forte is in belaboring the obvious.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 558: Bukowski's parents met in Andernach following World War I. His father was German-American and a sergeant in the United States Army serving in Germany after the empire's defeat in 1918. He had an affair with Katharina, a German friend's sister, and she subsequently became pregnant. Bukowski repeatedly claimed to be born out of wedlock, but Andernach marital records indicate that his parents married one month before his birth. Afterwards, Bukowski's father became a building contractor, set to make great financial gains in the aftermath of the war, and after two years moved the family to Pfaffendorf (today part of Koblenz). However, given the crippling postwar reparations being required of Germany, which led to a stagnant economy and high levels of inflation, he was unable to make a living and decided to move the family to the U.S. On April 23, 1923, they sailed from Bremerhaven to Baltimore, Maryland, where they settled.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 567: Failing to break into the military world, Bukowski grew disillusioned with the publication process and quit writing for almost a decade, a time that he referred to as a "ten-year drunk". These "lost years" formed the basis for his later semiautobiographical chronicles, fictionalized versions of Bukowski's life through his highly stylized alter-ego, Henry Chinaski.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 569: 1947 kehrte Bukowski nach Los Angeles zurück und lernte die zehn Jahre ältere Jane Cooney Baker (1910–1962) kennen, mit der er bis Anfang der 1950er-Jahre zusammenlebte. During part of this period he continued living in Los Angeles, working at a margarine - no, a pickle factory for a short time but also spending some time roaming about the U.S., working sporadically like Donald Duck and staying in cheap rooming houses. Ab 1952, he took a job as a fill-in letter carrier with the United States Post Office Department in Los Angeles, but resigned just before he reached three years' service.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 576: In 1969, Bukowski accepted an offer from Black Sparrow Press publisher John Martin and quit his post office job to dedicate himself to full-time writing. He was then 49 years old. As he explained in a letter at the time, "I have one of two choices – stay in the post office and go crazy ... or stay out here and play at writer and starve. I have decided to starve. Hah, he made a lot of bucks! By the late 1970s, Bukowski's income was sufficient to give up his lucrative live readings.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 580: Bukowski embarked on a series of love affairs and one-night stands. One of these relationships was with Linda King, a poet and sculptress. Die Beziehung zog sich über mehrere Jahre hin, wobei es zu mehrfachen Trennungen mit anschließender Versöhnung kam. Die zum Teil schmerzhaften Erfahrungen dieser Beziehung verarbeitete Bukowski in mehreren Kapiteln seines Romans Das Liebesleben einer Hyäne (Women).
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 589: In the 1980s, Bukowski collaborated with cartoonist Robert Crumb on a series of comic books with extremely big-assed hippies on huge shoes. Karl was in his sixties by then.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 596: Writers including John Fante, Knut Hamsun, Louis-Ferdinand Céline, Ernest Hemingway, Robinson Jeffers, Henry Miller, D. H. Lawrence, Fyodor Dostoevsky, Du Fu, Li Bai, and James Thurber are noted as influences on Bukowski's writing. No tietysti, kokonainen rimpsu alkoholisoituneita oikeistofasistisia setämiehiä.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 600: One critic has described Bukowski's fiction as a "detailed depiction of a certain taboo male fantasy: the uninhibited bachelor, slobby, anti-social, and utterly free",
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 606: Barfly, released in 1987, is a barfingly semi-autobiographical film written by Bukowski and starring Mickey Rourke as Henry Chinaski, who represents Bukowski, and Faye Dunaway as his lover Wanda Wilcox. Sean Penn offered to play Chinaski for one dollar as long as his friend Dennis Hopper would direct,[53] but the European director Barbet Schroeder had invested many years and thousands of dollars in the project and Bukowski felt Schroeder deserved to make it. Bukowski wrote the screenplay, was given script approval, and appears as a bar patron in a brief cameo.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 615: An obvious role model for Harry Hole. Häufige Schauplätze sind Rennbahnen, seien es für Pferde- oder für Hunderennen.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 617: „Auf der Basis seiner eigenen Erfahrungen schrieb er in knappem Stil harte, witzige Stories, Romane und Gedichte über das Leben in den Randzonen der bürgerl. amerikan. Gesellschaft. Schockwirkung durch die Darstellung brutaler Gewalt, obszöner Sexualität und des Schmutzes der Gosse (katuoja).“ – Der Literatur-Brockhaus: in acht Bänden
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 627: Peter Albert David Singer AC/DC (born 6 July 1946) is an Australian moral philosopher, currently the Ira W. DeCamp Professor of Bioethics at Princeton University. He specialises in applied ethics and approaches ethical issues from a secular, utilitarian perspective. He is known in particular for his book Animal Liberation (1975), in which he argues in favour of veganism, and his essay "Famine, Affluence, and Morality", in which he argues in favour of donating veggies to help the global poor. For most of his career, he was a preference utilitarian, but he stated in The Point of View of the Universe (2014), coauthored with Katarzyna de Lazari-Radek, that as he became a celeb and started earning bigger bucks, he had become a hedonistic utilitarian, or utilitarian hedonist.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 652: Peter Unger, Colin McGinn, Rice Crisp, Dale Carnegie, Gregory Peck, Julian Savulescu, James Rachels, Friedrich Engels, George Best, Toby Worst, Bill Gates, William MacAskill, Steven Pinker, Graham Greene, Samuel Benjamin Bankman-Fried
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 662: Should the Baby Live? The Problem of Handicapped Infants is a 1985 book by the philosophers Peter Singer and Helga Kuhse, in which the authors examine moral issues surrounding babies born with disabilities, and argue for infanticide in certain cases and cannibalism in others.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 675: Singer analyzes, in detail, why and how other beings' interests should be weighed. In his view, other being's interests should always be weighed according to that being's concrete value to you, and not according to its belonging to some abstract group like animal or veggie. Singer studies a number of ethical issues including race, sex, ability, species, abortion, euthanasia, infanticide, embryo experimentation, the moral status of animals, political violence, overseas aid, and whether we have an obligation to assist others at all. The 1993 second edition adds chapters on refugees, the environment, equality and disability, embryo experimentation, and the proper treatment of academics from Germany or Austria. A third edition published in 2011 omits the chapter on refugees, and contains a new chapter on climate change. A fourth edition is planned that omits climate change and adds a chapter on Russia and Ukraina.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 680: To live a good life, the book prescribes: "You can rethink your goals and question what you are doing with your life. That might mean quitting your job, selling your house (if you got one), and going to work for a voluntary organization in India. More often, you just stay on at the U of Melbourne and pen more bestsellers like this.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 694: Prior to FTX's collapse, Bankman-Fried was ranked the 41st richest American in the Forbes 400, and the 60th richest person in world by The World's Billionaires. His net worth peaked at $26 billion. In October 2022, he had an estimated net worth of $10.5 billion. By November 8, 2022, amid the bankruptcy of FTX, his net worth was estimated to have dropped 94 percent in a day to $991.5 million according to the Bloomberg Billionaires Index, the largest one-day drop in the index's history. On November 11, 2022, the Bloomberg Billionaires Index considered Bankman-Fried to have no material wealth. Before his wealth had evaporated, Bankman-Fried was a major donor to Democratic political campaigns, and planned to spend tens of millions in the 2024 U.S. presidential election.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 724: That money was sent in the form of crypto from Ukraine, through FTX, and then cashed out by FTX and sent to the DNC, i.e. US taxpayer money was taken by Congress, signed off by Biden and shipped to Ukraine as an aid package. Ukraine using FTX sent it back (they didn’t need it but probably kept a part) as a way of laundering it to the Democratic National Committee for their election campaigns (and commit election fraud, as has been proven). Taxpayer money was used to finance the midterm elections, which is no less than money laundering.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 743: Several of the women who spoke to TIME said that EA’s polyamorous subculture was a key reason why the community had become a hostile environment for women. One woman told TIME she began dating a man who had held significant roles at two EA-aligned organizations while she was still an undergraduate. They met when he was speaking at an EA-affiliated conference, and he invited her out to dinner after she was one of the only students to get his math and probability questions right. He asked how old she was, she recalls, then quickly suggested she join his polyamorous relationship. Shortly after agreeing to date him, “He told me that ‘I could sleep with you on Monday,’ but on Tuesday I’m with this other girl,” she says. “It was this way of being a f—boy but having the moral high ground,” she added. “It’s not a hookup, it’s a poly relationship.” The woman began to feel “like I was being sucked into a cult,” she says.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 803: Suomalaisessa pelikaupassa myytiin suomalaisille lapsille peliä missä olet globaali kaivosfirma joka koittaa perustaa avolouhoxia joka notkohon ja saarelmaan Suomessa. Vastustajana on Suomen valtio joka panee kapuloita rattaisiin joka käänteessä. VOI HELEVETTI mihin tässä on jo menty.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 851: Paul Haggis's films are heavy-handed. In the Valley of Elah is otherwise an engrossing murder mystery and antiwar statement, featuring a mesmerizing performance from Tommy Lee Jones. A police detective (Charlize Theron) helps a retired Army sergeant (Tommy Lee Jones) search for his son (Donald Duck), a soldier who went missing soon after returning from Iraq. Hank Deerfield (Bugs Bunny), a Vietnam War veteran, learns that his son may have met with foul play after a night on the town with members of his platoon. Rating: R (Some Sexuality/Nudity|Foul Language|Violent and Disturbing Content) Den här artikeln har skapats av Lsjbot, ett program (en robot) för automatisk redigering.
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 862: During David’s youth as a shepherd, he (David) developed many skills. He learned music, how to write, use a slingshot, how to pull uncircumcized men by the beard, and how to love Jonathan and obey the Lord. Do I understand that it’s my responsibility to develop my abilities like Jonathan Livingston The Seagull, and it’s God’s responsibility to direct me in how I use them? Do I realize that the most important skill I possess is my love for the Lord and my heart to obey Him? What miracles might God want to do through me that would show the whole earth that there is a God in the land? Kan jeg ble en helt liksom Harry Hole?
xxx/ellauri250.html on line 939: Harry innser at Bratt har tatt politiets filer uten tillatelse. Han får vite at Bratt leter etter en kobling mellom flere forskjellige saker som handler om savnede personer og en annen sak, fra ni år tidligere, som ble etterforsket av Gert Rafto. Bratt overtaler Harry til å åpne en ny etterforskning av forsvinningen av Sylvia Otterson, som de finner fremdeles i live på gården hennes. Men kort tid etter at de går derfra, halshugger en maskert figur Sylvia. Men senere møter de Sylvias identiske tvilling, Ane. Sylvias kropp er inne i låven hennes, og hodet er plassert på toppen av en snømann. Katrine tror en korrupt forretningsmann Arve Støp er ansvarlig for alle dødsfallene. Harry reiser til Bergen for å undersøke nærmere, og møter Rakels nye kjæreste Mathias, en kirurg.
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 48: Someone who returns from a long absence. A person or thing reborn. A supernatural being that returns from the dead; a zombie or ghost. Esimerkit: They would not visit this undesirable revenant with his insolent wealth and discreditable origin. The undergraduates, our fogey revenant observes, look much as they did.., in outward aspect. Brains... Brains... Brains... naah.
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 429: Tremble and sob in sleeping, like swift flames Vapisee ja nyyhkii unessa, kuin liekki sytkärin
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 430: That tremble, or water when it sobs with heat Vapisee, tai vesi kun se alkaa kuplia
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 442: Nor queen so nobly bore as noble a thing Eikä kukaan kymingatar niin jalosti synnyttänyt
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 774: Hides a perverse will with obsequious words,
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 878: Meleager, a noble wisdom and fair words
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1404: Being vile or noble or beautiful or base
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1625: But silence is most noble till the end.
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2721: Her robes were manifold;
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2747: She sobbed and lifted her breast;
xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3389: Serbia's Aleksandar Vucic stands tall at 6 foot 6, making him the tallest world leader. House 2021 Donald Trump weighed 244 pounds according to the results of a physical performed in June 2020. Speaker Nancy Pelosi insisted that he's morbidly obese. The president is 6-foot-3 inches tall. This means the once and future president is considered only clinically obese and has a Body Mass Index (BMI) of 30.3.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 137: Suomen nuorin tohtori 1963 ei ollu E.Saarinen vaan se tyhmä lintutieteilijä. Eiköhän vielä nuorempia tullut Turusta 1600-luvulla. Imi toimitettiin runoseminaarista hassufarmille mattokäärössä kuin Bobin vaimo Tikkaska.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 203: Venäläiset valtasivat Hersonin takaisin 3. maaliskuuta 2022. Ukraina valtasi kaupungin takaisin 11. marraskuuta. Roskixesta esiinkaivettu Alex Stubb kertoo Hoblassa että Putin on jo ize asiassa hävinnyt. Niinhän me jo luultiin Alexistakin, mutta kato nyt. Se putkahtaa esiin viemäristä kuin pieruinen pökäle.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 232: Uuden Suomettaren niin saatanan tyylikäs, objektiivinen, pelkästään tosioihin nojautuva tohtoristyttö vapaasti lainaten sanoi: aina on ollut nuorallatanssijoita ja muita rujoja jotka korva kuhilona ja mankku perseen takana tekevät juttuja ja väittävät että se on taidetta. Se osoitti jos ei muuta niin ihmisen jonka piti olla jonkinlainen kansankirjallisuuden tutkija, sokeutta ja kuuroutta ja tietämättömyyttä puhekielisen repliikin ja lauseen olemuksesta, ja kun näin on, toivotan ämmälle kohdunkaulan syöpää ja verisuonten kalkkeutumista ja suorinta tietä mullan alle. Just tällänen toivotus oli mulla mielessä sille Jättijaon väkäleualle.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 248: Cary Grant saattoi olla juutalainen ja se todennäköisesti oli homo. Rooseveltin esi-isät saattoi olla juutalaisia Hollannissa. Claes Rosenvelt entered the cloth business in New York, and was married in 1682. He accumulated a fortune. He then changed his name to Nicholas Roosevelt. Of his four sons, Isaac died young. Nicholas married Sarah Solomons. Jacobus married Catherina Hardenburg. The Roosevelts were not a fighting but a peace-loving people, devoted to trade. Isaac became a capitalist. He founded the Bank of New York in 1790.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 254: Norman Corwin was Jewish, and his parents observed Judaism (his father, Sam Corwin, attended holiday services until his death at 110). While not an observant Jew, Corwin infused much of his work with the ideas of the Hebrew Prophets. One of the prayerbooks of American Reform Judaism, Shaarei Tefila: Gates of Prayer, contains a portion of the Prayer from the finale of Corwin's On a Note of Triumph (see link to full text below). Corwin was among the first producers to regularly use entertainment – even light entertainment – to tackle serious social issues.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 338: Arkkipiispa Martti Simojoki piti puolestaan 11. marraskuuta 1964 kansanopistolaitoksen 75-vuotisjuhlassa Helsingin yliopistolla puheen, jossa hän tuomitsi Hannu Salaman ja kirjan kustantajan. Hän korosti, että pyhistä asioista ei saanut puhua loukkaavalla tavalla, koska silloin pilkattiin ihmiseksi kasvamisen perusasioita. Ullanlinnan "Bobin" vaimo oli kasvanut ihmisenä niin ettei "Bob" saanut sitä heivatuxi Volvon perälle.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 447: Raivostuttaa minuakin kun naisia kohdellaan pelkkinä sexiobjekteina, valehtelee Beck ulkoläxyn oloisesti. Åsa alkoi jo kiihottua ja välttääxeen pitemmän vuodatuxen naisten syrjinnästä ja miesten sovinismista Beck näytti sille Zanussi-röökiaskia peittäen alkutavun peukalolla ja ehdotti: -TAAX?
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 527: China’s rise in the 21st century and its challenge to America’s global preeminence have vindicated MacArthur. He should have been allowed to nuke the chinks off the face of the earth when there still was a chance. Kiinalaiset on näät hirmu imperialistisia. Ne uhkaa Amerikan Tyynen meren mare nostrumia. Sellainen peli ei vetele! American vital interests are at stake.
xxx/ellauri252.html on line 559: Krimeissä myös herkutellaan nimeltä mainituilla erityisen super tappavilla aseilla, näppärillä teknillisillä pikku yxityiskohdilla ja tappajien muka erityisen huolellisella koulutuxella. Tappavan ikävystyttävää lukea. Siinä on jotain hurjan anaalis-obsessiivista, nazimaista virkamiesmentaliteettia.
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 86: Primary factors believed to have led to the recession include the following: restrictive monetary policy enacted by central banks, primarily in response to inflation concerns, the loss of consumer and business confidence as a result of the 1990 oil price shock, the end of the Cold War and the subsequent decrease in defense spending, the savings and loan crisis and a slump in office construction resulting from overbuilding during the 1980s. The 1990 oil price shock occurred in response to the Iraqi invasion of Kuwait on August 2, 1990, Saddam Hussein's second invasion of a fellow OPEC member. Lasting only nine months, the price spike was less extreme and of shorter duration than the previous oil crises of 1973–1974 and 1979–1980, but the spike still contributed to the recession of the early 1990s in the United States. The average monthly price of oil rose from $17 per barrel in July to $36 per barrel in October. As the U.S.-led coalition experienced military success against Iraqi forces, concerns about long-term supply shortages eased and prices began to fall.
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 92: The US economy returned to 1980s level growth by 1993 and global GDP growth by 1994.
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 107: The Great Recession was a period of marked general decline, i.e. a recession, observed in national economies globally that occurred from late 2007 into 2009. The scale and timing of the recession varied from country to country (see map). At the time, the International Monetary Fund (IMF) concluded that it was the most severe economic and financial meltdown since the Great Depression. One result was a serious disruption of normal international relations. Causes: Limited financial regulation, Real-estate bubbles bursting, US housing policy.
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 131: During a period of strong global growth, growing capital flows, and prolonged stability earlier this decade, market participants sought higher yields without an adequate appreciation of the risks and failed to exercise proper due diligence. At the same time, weak underwriting standards, unsound risk management practices, increasingly complex and opaque financial products, and consequent excessive leverage combined to create vulnerabilities in the system.
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 231: Kunnan keskustaajama on Taavetti. Luumäki tunnetaan paitsi mökkikuntana ja P. E. Svinhufvudin kotipitäjänä, myös jaloberyllistä, jota kunnan alueelta on löytynyt. Ervasti piti keskisormessa naziäidin rautasormusta ja suuteli sen suomalaista hakaristiä. Heil Mutler! 17-vuotiaana hänen kynnetön sormensa oli kasvanut riittävän paxuxi ettei sormus enää pudonnut vaikkei äiti puristanut sitä lujasti. Heikki kaipasi äitiään ja kasteli öisin vuoteensa kuin Kaarlo Syväntö. Vähitellen se tottui keinoemoon ja alkoi kastella tämän vuodetta. Suomesta talouspakolaisina lähteneet oli maan ja mezän omistajia, hammaslääkäreitä, pankinjohtajia ja muita fixuja ihmisiä. Vitun kusipäitä, se on lyhyempi lause. Saman verran lähti 60-luvulla Volvon tehtaille. Tapettuaan niistä valtaosan koronalla vanhainkodeissa Ruåzi lähettäisi mielellään loput takaisin.
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 240: "You can do it if you really try". Yes we can. Ura my pobedujem! Naisen elimissä poltti voima ja energia plus solidaarisuus. Rauha ystävyys, solidaarisuus, nuorten yhteistyö sen varmistaa voi. Miten voitamme hädän ja kurjuuden, kun nääntyy niin moni ihminen, ettei olla tarvitsisi nälissään köyhimmänkään? Miten voimme me sodat lopettaa ja aseet teljetä lukkojen taa? Miten suuntaamme voimat toimintaan rakentavaan? Nainen: Maailman nuorten työllä yhteisin ponnistuksin, maailman nuorten työ sen varmistaa voi. "Yucca" kuuli naisen puheesta välittömästi että nainen oli amerikkalainen.
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 242: Laura Quinn IBM. Kaskun ei Microsoft. True blue sinisen armeijakunnan kuikalla on jalavoissa vanhat Adidaxet USA- solidaarisuuden merkkinä. Mitä vitun vainajia ne oikein raahaavat pakasteautoon ruskeissa papersäkeissä? Oispa "Bobilla" ollut nää jätkät repsikoina. ei olis jäänyt mattorulla pihalle. Markku rakastaa isänmaata enemmän kuin Ville-vauvaa tahi Vuokkoa. Vuokko ei jaxa enää lapioida lunta pihalta.
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 308: Keväinen Tshernobylin onnettomuus oli ukrainalaisten omaa tunarointia. Vain amerikkalaisilla on tarkempia mittalaitteita. Ehkä kiinalaisilla, mutteivät kerro.
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 353: Koppiauton hintainen Dr Scholl työpöytä oli sisustettu pelkistetysti mutta kalliisti: asiakkaiden lompakon luottamuxen mukaisesti. Tää Heikki onkin nähtävästi maailman paskin nalle sillä se johtaa Ruåzista käsin Sampo-konsernia. 7 keskijalan jacuzzi ja 200K kruunun juppinalle. Mixhän nää kerskakonsumptiojutut kuumottaa niin paljon karhennettuja turtanoita? Heikin kainalot kostuivat kitkerästä hiestä. Näistä eritteistä Unto näyttää ize olevan enstex eniten kuumissaan. Seuraavassa kuvassa Hoblan nätin espoolaisen keskiaukeamatytön esiin kiihottamia fiktiivisiä jääkärieritteitä. Tytössä on jotain samaa kuin Lea Lehtisalossa.
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 394: "Yucca" muisti "kuin eilisen päivän" syyskuussa 1977, kun hän tuli Göteborgista britteihin kuin Kummisedän italialaiset mafiosot, totisilla, salaisen toiveikkailla kasvoilla sama luihu ilme kuin Robert de Niron konnaperheellä niiden huomatessa ranskalaisten lahjoittaman onton pazaan Manhattanin rannassa. Puolijohdetekniikkaa käsittelevän suuren kirjan välissä oli ollut isän kotitalon kuva tuolla Tuupovaarassa, eivaan siis Vimpelin Tyrmänkylässä. Hän oli itkenyt katkeraa nytkähtelevää itkua katkera, nytkähtelevä kyrpä kourassa. Nukkumista oli turha edes yrittää tahmaisissa lakanoissa. No nyt tuli kyillä silmitöntä paskanjauhantaa Unto!
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 449: Jukalla on hikinen ozatukka. Se muistuttaa varmaan aika lailla Simo Silakkaa. Brad Robertin sorzien sisään kiinnitetty hakulaite piippasi. Soikion muotoinen Brad on ydinfyysikko. Hän veti sorzit jalasta luullen ehtivänsä suihkuun ennen tehtävää. Toisin kävi, sorzit jäivät pihalle, mukaan ehti vain hikiset pyörylä ja soikio. CIA:n O'Brien tuoxui valkosipulilta. Sen on oltava ryssien 2x agentti!
xxx/ellauri253.html on line 497: Dostojevskin Kirillov piti kuolemanpelkoa uskonnon psykologisena juurena. Olipa omaperäinen läppä Dostolta. Mikähän tautta Fedja setä oli ylipäänsä niin innostunut svobodasta? Siinä ei ole juuri järkeä, mutta sama vika on ollut hirmu monilla narsistisilla oikislaisilla. Ville lastenkodissa yxinäisenä ja hylättynä ei tietäisi ezen isä oli ollut sekobolzi terroristi.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 39: Vienanlahdelta Laatokkaan
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 92: With the world’s attention fixed firmly on the invasion of Ukraine, Antony Pyp Pipo’s new history of Russia’s 1917 revolutions and subsequent civil war is especially timely. He explains to Rob Attaboy how the fall of the last tsar launched a chain of events leading to millions of deaths and one of history’s most brutal dictatorships! Lähde: History Extra
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 94: Rob Attaboy pohjustaa Antony Pyp Pipon haastattelua: The Provisional Government, its effectiveness hampered by a lack of legitimacy, faced a powerful rival in the shape of the socialist-led Petrograd Soviet that ruled the country’s then-capital city (now called St Petersburg). The Bolsheviks, led by Vladimir Lenin (note only 2 letters away from Vladimir Putin!) , sought to undermine the Provisional Government, which itself made a series of missteps – notably continued failures in the war against Germany and Austria-Hungary. Capitalising on these weaknesses, the Bolsheviks under Lenin and Leon Trotsky launched a coup d’état, the so-called October Revolution, seizing power with relative ease. Consolidating that power proved far more difficult, as a combination of opponents – ranging from former tsarist generals to other leftwing political groups who distrusted the Bolsheviks – took up arms against them.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 100: Then Rob Attaboy interviews Antony Pyp Pipo:
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 102: Rob Attaboy: What new insights have emerged from the work that you and Lyuba have done over these past few years?
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 111: This was exactly what Lenin and the Bolsheviks needed. The upsurge of chaotic violence was actually bulldozing a way through for the Bolsheviks to seize power, because the liberals were incapable (and actually unwilling) to do anything about it. What Lenin perceived – and he was absolutely right – was that the success of a coup depends on the apathy of the majority, not on how many real supporters you have. Trump and Bolsonaro made the same observation.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 113: Even many Bolsheviks were shocked by Lenin’s extremism. His new government abolished the police and the army, replacing them with Red Guards from the factories, and absolutely everything was nationalised! How indecent! This course of action wasn’t apparent beforehand, and – not surprisingly since they lost their jobs and status – many of the civil servants didn’t want to work with the new government.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 118: Rob Attaboy: The Bolsheviks didn’t have the support of the majority of people around the country at the time of the revolution. Didn’t that put them at a serious disadvantage once the civil war began?
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 127: The problems created by the antisemitic an arrogant Whites also applied to their relationships with possible allies such as the red Finns, the Baltic States and the Poles later on. If those powers had combined, they could easily have defeated the communists (haha LOL).
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 132: Rob Attaboy: Many international powers lined up on the side of the White army. Why were they not able to affect the outcome of the conflict?
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 134: Antony Pyp Pipo: Their commitment was unclear, and this was always the problem: they couldn’t make up their own minds. In the early part of 1919, US president Woodrow Wilson thought that some form of peace could be achieved in Russia, and suggested a conference to be held in the Princes’ Islands lying in the Sea of Marmara close to Constantinople [now Istanbul]. However, the Whites were so furious at the Reds and what had happened up till then – the murders of the aristocracy, the destruction and so on – that they refused to sit down with the Reds. And Lenin and the Bolsheviks – who at that stage thought that they were going to win the war (as they did) – had no intention of sitting down with them, let alone the motherfucking Anglo Saxons meddling everywhere with just their own "vital interests" in mind.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 136: Rob Attaboy: What is the lesson to draw from your new book considering the current Ukraina war?
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 145: Rob Attaboy: How was the Red Army eventually able to triumph over their White opponents?
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 152: Denikin’s advance initially went well, and there were moments when Trotsky and others in the Red camp really thought that they were facing defeat. But, because the Red Army no longer had to worry about Kolchak’s troops to the east, they were able to reinforce their troops facing Denikin. October 1919 saw a complete turnaround – the final turning point, if you like, in the war.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 156: Rob Attaboy: Some of the places that were fought over during the civil war have recently been battlegrounds in the current conflict in Ukraine. How far, if at all, did the Russian civil war prefigure the events of today?
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 160: This is what Putin has been raging about: it was Lenin who gave Ukraine its autonomy at that stage. The Bolsheviks thought that allowing a certain amount of autonomy or independence to these former nation states of the Russian empire would cause no problems, because the forthcoming world revolution would bring those states back under communist control – and that’s where they made their great mistake. They did not count on the wily Westerners to come sneaking in with their Coke and burger laissez faire and tease away the little bro.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 231: 1850-luvun puolivälissä Nekrasov sairastui vakavasti ja lähti Italiaan toipumaan. Hänen lomaillessaan Aikalaiseen tuli kaksi radikaalimpaa kirjoittajaa Nikolai Tšernyševski ja Nikolai Dobroljubov. Nekrasovia arvosteltiin, kun hän päästi Tšernyševskin hyökkäykset lehden sivuille, ja vuonna 1860 talousliberaali Ivan Turgenev kieltäytyi enää julkaisemasta mitään Aikalaisessa.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 343: Nobelista puhumattakaan (sitä ei vielä jaettu);
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 510: Oli vuosi 1967. Anselm Hollo vainajan isäpappa J.A. Hollo kuoli, Ilkka Kylävaara vainajan isäpappa toimitti kirjan vuosi 17 joka löytyi juuri poistohyllystä, meikä oli isävainajansa kanssa Tähtitornin mäellä kazomassa Suomi 50 ilotulituxia. SITRA perustettiin. Seuraavana kesänä olin Kivisaaressa kun Bob Kennedystä päästettiin ilmat pihalle. Oi niitä aikoja. Typerä Alain Bretonkin kuoli 1967. Että Eski olikin vastenmielinen Suomi Sata juhlallisuuxien aikana. Se taisikin olla keskustajohtoisen fasistihallituxen aikoja. Nyze ryömi taas torakkana kynnyxen alta jauhamaan vielä kerran porsasmaisen Pipsan etovia ns. suloja. Tuskin Eskilläkään enää jököttää ellei sitten jollain sinisillä pillereillä kuten Capitanin swinger-juhlissa.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 519: Jomppa ei ole sosialisti, se ei uhraa nykyisyyttään tulevaisuudelle. Haistakoon pitkän vitun, ja se on pelkästään positiivinen toivotus. Penasta näkee ettei se ole tehnyt koskaan ruumiillista työtä, toisin kuin Jomppa Ojaharju ja Mauno Koivisto. Kopu kazoi Albertin ja Pikku-Roban kulmassa sekatavarakaupan ikkunaa. Niitäkään ei enää ole, ei ikkunoita eikä kauppoja. Mukavuusmyymälöiden ikkunat on peitetty muovilla ettei havenoteille tule kiusausta niitä rikkoa. Sukupolven päästä tästä Hyvinkään kultahatun pikku pipulla oli erektio ihan kulman takana Albertinkadulla. Siitä piti sitten vallan kirja kirjoittaa.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 559: Ei ole kahta henkilöä, jotka olisivat niin kaukana toisistaan kuin Gabriel Marques ja Jorma Ojaharju. Marques syntyi kultalusikka suussa, asui äitinsä kartanossa, opiskeli lakia ja alkoi toimittajana seikkailla Euroopassa, vietti aikaa Fidel Castron sohvamopsina Havannassa ja sai ylimääräisen kuhmun nenäänsä ällöttävän Mario Vargas Llosan nyrkistä. Ainostaan tuo kirjallisuushistorian kuuluisin nyrkkitappelu yhdistää nämä kaksi ihmistä toisiinsa. Ojaharju sai vain nyrkiniskuja enemmän, mutta ei fellow nobelisteilta.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 563: Matin luottamustehtävistä yliopistohallinnon ja tieteellisten seurojen ohella tärkeimpiä ovat globaalit tiedepuistojärjestöt ja niiden hallitukset ja asiantuntijatehtävät (GÄSP, BURP). Kansallisesti ja alueellisesti korkeakouluneuvostossa, maakuntahallinnossa (Häme), keskussairaalan valtuustossa ja hallituksessa (Kanta-Häme), valtuustossa ja hallituksessa (Forssa).
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 565: Julkaisuja hänellä on yli 3500 tieteellistä tai popularisoitua, esseemuotoista artikkelia, joista yli 100 monografisia kirjoja, professorin pätevyyksiä yli kymmeneen yliopistoon tai tutkimuslaitokseen sekä luonnontieteissä (natural science) että ihmistieteissä (human science). Kaikki ideakilpailujen innovaatiot on myös toteutettu pääsääntöisesti globaaleina suurhankkeina.
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 568: Olemme siirtyneet media-aikaan, jossa sekä tuotamme että kulutamme mediamme kilpaillen samalla sen uskottavuudesta. Sellainen on kuitenkin kenelle tahansa kohtuuton tehtävä koko ajan muuttuvassa ja uutta tietoa luovassa niin paikallisessa kuin globaalissa ympäristössämme. Tarvitsemme apua, jollaista olemme oppineet hankkimaan joko paikallisena, yhden asian ilmiöinä (esim. psykiatria), tai globaalina, stereotyyppisinä yleistyksinä ja harhoinamme (poliittinen puhe), pahimmillaan geopoliittisena sumutuksena ja pelotteluna (Ukrainan selkkaus).
xxx/ellauri255.html on line 587: The Great Turn or Great Break (Russian: Великий перелом) was the radical change in the economic policy of the USSR from 1928 to 1929, primarily consisting of the process by which the New Economic Policy (NEP) of 1921 was abandoned in favor of the acceleration of collectivization and industrialization and also a cultural revolution. The term came from the title of Joseph Stalin's article "Year of the Great Turn" ("Год великого перелома: к XII годовщине Октября", literally: "Year of the Great Break: Toward the 12th Anniversary of October") published on November 7, 1929, the 12th anniversary of the October Revolution. David R. Marples argues that the era of the Great Break lasted until 1934.
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 390: Jaakobin kirje 1:25
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 447: 2. vaimo. Harpputaiteilija, Leinon ystävän, säveltäjä Robert Kajanuksen tytär. Liitto kesti vuoden.
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 548: Solvej Balles roman ’Om udregning af rumfang’ handler kort fortalt om Tara, som sammen med sin mand, Thomas, handler med antikvariske bøger. Efter en forretningsrejse er tiden gået i stykker og kommet imellem dem, fordi Tara er den eneste, der har været i- og oplevet den 18. november, mens Thomas (og alle andre) lever i dagen før. Tara indvier sin mand i problemet flere dage i træk og må starte forfra hver dag med at forklare forskydningen, som han gerne vil hjælpe med at opklare – men det bliver hurtigt et gentagende sisyfosarbejde.
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 580: »At der er mennesker på det, vi kalder vores planet, at vi kan færdes på en roterende kugle i et umådeligt verdensrum fyldt med ubegribeligt store objekter med dele så små, at tanken slet ikke kan begribe, hvor små og hvor mange de er.« Hvordan går det til, at disse uendeligt mange små genstande midt i det ubegribeligt store kan holde sammen på sig selv, og at vi kan holde os svævende? Eller?
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 699: The movie is based on the cult novel by Kari Hotakainen, itself a comedic, exaggerated vision of the author's own bohemian life. A newspaper editor hints at Hotakainen (Martti Suosalo) that he should write autobiographical texts about real-world subjects. The lonely and quiet writer is confused since he has little life of which to write about. So he decides to buy a used car and write about the experience. But he has to meet some strange people such as the nihilistic salesman Kartio (Matti Onnismaa) and the jobless layabout Pera (Janne Hyytiäinen), in order to do so. Pera in particular will stop at nothing to get his hands on the same car Hotakainen has been viewing, which sparks up a huge rivalry. These flabby machos drive the disgruntled small guy over the edge.
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 703: Today, some aspects, such as the increasingly important role given to the (now retired) news anchor Arvi Lind are a bit old-fashioned. Likewise the ending isn't as sharp nor farcical as it attempts to be. Yet the film does uncover some universal truths from the behavior of Finnish men, particularly when automobiles are concerned. The men are all alcoholic sad sacks, failures in every aspect, yet they wish to have one field in which they shine and that is with cars.
xxx/ellauri259.html on line 756: Klassikko-teoxen loppupuheenvuorossa tehty miesten klischeinen kahtiajako klassisiin ja moderneihin jatkaa samaa puisevaa setämiesmeemiä kuin Visa Mäkelän tyydyttämätön raiskattava. Jos Kari on ollut tosissaan tässä eikä taas kerran vaan vinoile niin ei voi sanoa muuta kuin voi persetti. Kari on todellakin persukansan bardi. Se pitäisi hilata korkealle puuhun suukapulalla varustettuna sillä aikaa kun asteriski ja obeliski perheineen juhlivat villisikapaistin ääressä sahti kuohuen sarvissa.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 46: Runoilija Jari Pervo on tönkkö ja klischeinen. Runoilija Kari Hotakainen on skizo ja estoinen. Omahyväisiä narsisteja molemmat. Mitäs niistä enempää voi sanoa. Self satisfying lot kuten [Steve] Jobsin guru Yogianakonda albumissa 399.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 145: Hiroshiman ja öljykriisin jälkeisessä maailmassa, sosialismin kaaduttua ja ympäristötuhojen uhatessa suuret kertomukset ovat kadonneet. Maailma on sirpaleina. Kokonaisuuksien hallinta ja asioiden merkityssisällöt ovat kadonneet. Mantroina ovat talous, globalisaatio ja tietoverkot.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 163: Päätyö: Global Paradox: The Bigger the Economy´s Big Players, the More Powerless Its Smallest Players. William ToMorrow & Company, Inc., 1994
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 183:
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 227: Burden received only a two-year scholarship offered to women to attend the University of Chicago where she studsed frequently under Thornton Wilder and graduated in 1936. She and her husband David were married from 1940 to 1949. After the dissolution of their marriage, Jean met Alan Watts and they had a "four year, tumultuous love affair". Though ending badly, the union inspired Watts to call Jean in his autobiography (p. 297) an "important influence". Jean used Alan´s calligraphy and a quote from him (有水皆含月 : All the waters contain the moon) in her last major work, Taking Light from Each Other. She called him "one of the most fascinating men I have ever met, except Thornton was Wilder".
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 248: Theatre became his passion, and he spent hours in the Doe Library reading European newspapers to learn more about the modern expressionist movement. “The way other kids would follow baseball scores,” his nephew related, “Thornton’s hobby was reading German newspapers so he could read up on German Theater and great German directors like Max Reinhardt.”
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 255: He formed a close, fervent and life-long friendship with Gertrude Stein, but his shyness and natural reserve kept him from acknowledging their shared homosexuality. Writer Samuel Steward records the reticence which kept this close circle of friends deeply in the closet — even to one another. Six years after Wilder’s death, Samuel Steward wrote in his autobiography that he too had had sexual relations with him (and her):
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 257: Suddenly she grabbed my knee. “Sammy,” she said, “do you think that Alice and I are lesbians?” I had a genuine hot curl of fire up my spine. “I don’t see that it’s anybody’s business one way or another,” I said. “Do you care whether we are,” she asked. “Not in the least,” I said. I was suddenly dripping wet. “Are you queer or gay or different or ‘of it’ as the French say or whatever they are calling it nowadays,” she said, looking narrowly at me. I waggled my hand sidewise. “Both ways,” I said. “I don’t see why I should go through life limping on just one leg to satisfy a so-called norm.” “It bothers a lot of people,” Gertrude said. “But like you said, it’s nobody’s business, it came from the Judeo-Christian ethos, especially Saint Paul the bastard, but he was complaining about youngsters who were not really that way, they did it for money, everybody suspects us or knows but nobody says anything about it. Did Thornie tell you?” “Only when I asked him a direct question and then he didn’t want to answer, he didn’t want to at all. He said yes he supposed in the beginning but that it was all over now.” Gertrude laughed. “How could he know. He doesn’t know what love is. And that’s just like Thornie.”
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 263: The Bridge of San Luis Rey (1927) tells the story of several unrelated people who happen to be on a bridge in Peru when it collapses, killing them. Philosophically, the book explores the problem of evil, or the question, of why unfortunate events occur to people who seem "innocent" or "undeserving", known as theodicy. It won the Pulitzer Prize in 1928, and in 1998 it was selected by the editorial board of the American Modern Library as one of the 100 best novels of the twentieth century. The book was quoted by British Prime Minister Tony Blair during the memorial service for victims of the September 11 attacks in 2001.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 314: COT. Listen!—pressing business obliges me to be absent till late to-night; I leave the shop to your care.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 324: BOLT. Oh, sir, we have done but our duty.—Come forward, Bobby.—I repeat it, our duty: our duty is to amuse these ladies and gentlemen,—and if anything we have done has contributed to that desirable end, we certainly think our “Day has been well Spent.”
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 378: Mit knapper Not entkommen Weinberl und Christoph und kehren zum Geschäft zurück. Dort ertappen sie die Einbrecher Rab und Kraps auf frischer Tat und werden dafür von Zangler belobigt. Auch Marie und August dürfen einander endlich in die Arme schließen. Aber Weinberl, der Frau von Fischer einen – erfolgreichen – Heiratsantrag macht, ist von seiner Sehnsucht geheilt:
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 398: Barnaby Tucker, an Apprentice in Vandergelder's Store – Robert Morse
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 419: The 1958 film version, adapted by John Michael Hayes and directed by Joseph Anthony, starred Shirley Booth as Dolly, Anthony Perkins as Cornelius, Shirley MacLaine as Irene, Paul Ford as Vandergelder, and Robert Horse reprising his Broadway role as Barnaby.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 519: In New York, Irene and Minnie open their hat shop for the afternoon. Irene does not love Horace Vandergelder, but knows that the marriage will provide her with financial security and an escape from her boring job. However, Irene hopes to escape her loveless marriage, and plans to try and find real love before the summer is over. Cornelius and Barnaby arrive at the shop and pretend to be rich- Irene seems to take to Cornelius immediately. Horace and Dolly arrive, and Cornelius and Barnaby hide. Minnie screams when she finds Cornelius hiding in an armoire. Horace is about to open the armoire himself, but Dolly "searches" it and pronounces it empty. After hearing Cornelius sneeze, Horace storms out upon realizing there are men hiding in the shop, although he is unaware that they are his clerks. Dolly arranges for Cornelius and Barnaby, who are still pretending to be rich, to take the ladies out to dinner at Harmonia Gardens to make up for their humiliation. Dolly briefly tries to teach Cornelius and Barnaby to dance, which leads to the whole town dancing in the local park.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 606: The prominent 20th-century protestant theologian Paul Tillich remains highly influential in the theothanatic field. Drawing upon the work of Friedrich Nietzsche, Friedrich Schelling, and Jacob Boehme, Tillich developed a notion of God as the "God above the God" and the response to nihilism.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 616: So What´s The Problem?
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 620: Altizer combined Kierkegaard and Mircea Eliade to concoct a mystical rather than ethical language for solving the problem of the death of God, or, as he puts it, in mapping out the way from the profane to the sacred. Which makes a rather rough reading, admits William Hughes Hamilton III (March 9, 1924 – February 28, 2012) who was a prominent theologian and proponent of the Death of God movement.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 631: The field of secular theology, a subfield of liberal theology advocated by Robinson somewhat combines secularism and theology. Recognized in the 1960s, it was influenced both by neo-orthodoxy, Dietrich Bonhoeffer, Harvey Cox, and the existentialism of Søren Kierkegaard and Paul Tillich. Robinson, along with Douglas John Hall and Rowan Williams, see that Secular theology had digested modern movements like the Death of God Theology propagated by Thomas J. J. Altizer or the philosophical existentialism of Tillich and eased the introduction of such ideas into the theological mainstream and made constructive evaluations, as well as contributions, to the problems caused by the demise of out heavenly father.
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 658: In his book Mere Christianity, the apologist C. S. Lewis, creator of Narnia and writer of fascinating scifi books in Portuguese about Mars and Venus*, objected to Hamilton´s version of Christian atheism and the claim that Jesus was merely a moral guide:
xxx/ellauri261.html on line 662: I am here to prevent anyone saying the really foolish thing that people often say about Him: 'I'm ready to accept Jesus as a great moral teacher, but I don't accept his claim to be God.' That is the one thing we must not say. A man who was merely a man and said the sort of things Jesus said would not be a great moral teacher. He would either be a lunatic—on the level with the man who says he is a poached egg—or else he would be the Devil of Hell. You must make your choice. Either this man was, and is, the Son of God, or else a madman or something worse. You can shut him up for a fool, you can spit at him and kill him as a demon or you can fall at his feet and call him Lord and God, but let us not come with any patronising nonsense about his being a great human teacher. He has not left that open to us. He did not intend to. ... Now it seems to me obvious that He was neither a lunatic nor a fiend: and consequently, however strange or terrifying or unlikely it may seem, I have to accept the view that He was and is God.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 60: Ranskixet mahtailivat Preussille Espanjan perimyskiistan johdosta, ajattelivat antaa sakemanneille pienen opetuxen. Perseelleen meni, Wilho ja rautakansleri marssivat Pariisiin ja ampuivat sen täyteen reikiä Kruppin paksuilla Bertoilla. Frankit joutuivat antautumaan ehdoitta germaaniveljille ja hautoivat siitä lähin niille kostoa. Siitä syntyi paljon nobel-palkittuja fin de siècle meemejä.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 246: Eski on ujo mutta nauttii olla huomion kohteena. Sen hapuileva selostus kyllä osoittaa mistä kenkä puristaa: E.S. on narsisti. Se nauttii olla valokiilassa ja kuulla yleisön kohahduxia. Yleisö, yäk. Siinäpä eklottava käsite. Seurakunta. Tämän seurakunnan edessä. Siunaan nyt tämän (ei muista nimeä. Menee sivupenkille istumaan ja huokailemaan.) - Olen Ylistarosta! Eskin perhe ei ole akateeminen. Se pilkistää joka saumasta, niin kultahatusta, nahkatakista kuin leobardilegginseistä.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 259: Hienoa että pääsit mukaan! Kiva kun kuzuit! I've had a shit day. Samuli olisi aina halunnut olla suosittu ja kuuluisa, maailman nuorin kirjallisuuden nobel-palkittu. Harmillisesti Kipling (41v) ehätti edelle. Sitä kautta Samu päätyi yli 70-vuotiaana standup koomikoxi. Jo lapsena hän pelkäsi kuolemaa ja ajatteli että jotain täytyy jäädä jäljelle, edes koirankakka haudalle.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 357: Jani Kaaro ei muista Thronhillin ja Palmerin nimiä. Käytä wikipediaa! Behavior resembling rape in humans can be seen in the animal kingdom, including ducks and geese [citation needed], bottlenose dolphins, and chimpanzees. Indeed, in orangutans, close human relatives, such copulations constitute up to half of observed matings. Such 'forced copulations' involve animals being approached and sexually penetrated while struggling or attempting to escape. Observations of forced sex in animals are uncontroversial; controversial are the interpretation of these observations and the extension of theories based on them to humans. Thornhill introduces this theory by describing the sexual behavior of scorpionflies. In which the male may gain sex from the female either by presenting a gift of food during courtship or without a nuptial offering, in which case force is necessary to restrain her.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 402: Ferguson has a long history of controversial remarks. In 2013, he criticized John Maynard Keynes for being gay and childless. He later apologized for his remarks, but claimed that accusations of homophobia are part of the “occupational hazards of public life nowadays.” Ferguson also suggested that so-called cancel culture in universities would have been unthinkable during his time as a student, and even during his earlier teaching career at NYU.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 408: Boghossian and his collaborators in the hoax wrote that fields such as cultural and identity studies were “grievance studies” with the “common goal of problematizing aspects of culture in minute detail in order to attempt diagnoses of power imbalances and oppression rooted in identity.”
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 410: Boghossian said he believed suppressing professors’ ideologies is one of the major problems of academia. When asked about private universities like NYU, he said he was more concerned about public institutions because they receive greater funding from taxpayers.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 412: “The president of Portland State University said that the highest priority of the institution was racial justice,” Boghossian said. “Now that’s an absolutely remarkable statement, a genuinely remarkable statement. Not budget, not publication, not teaching excellence, not retention, but racial justice. A private institution like Bob Jones University can make their mission statement anything they want to make. My primary concern is with public institutions.”
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 417: It was probably inevitable that Jonathan Haidt, an academic long concerned about the politicization of academia, would eventually be caught up in the displacement of intellectual inquiry by ideological rigidity.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 435: There’s a lot of interest internationally, and what I’ve picked up is that everyone recognizes that America is particularly sick, that we’re worse off than other countries. But on the other hand, they see the signs in their own country. And so there’s a lot of interest in what’s happening in America, because it’s clear this could be a problem that many liberal democracies are going to face — or are beginning to face — in the social media age.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 442: That’s what has so impressed me about the Village Square and Liz Joyner’s efforts. They were originally very focused on Tallahassee, which as the state capital means you have a lot of people who want to solve problems.
xxx/ellauri265.html on line 466: Mobiilista on tosiaankin tullut elämänhallinnan kaukosäädin vaikkei tää futuristi sitä ysärillä uskonut. Hypesykli = mediasykli + markkinasykli. Sitä on kommunikatiivinen kapitalismi. Valtameediat on rahavallan hallussa.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 77: sobre la intimidad
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 136: Um so peinlicher überrascht fühlten sich daher alle Freunde des Dichters, als plötzlich höchst oberflächliche und zum Teil direkt minderwertige Produkte seiner Feder auf dem Markt erschienen.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 145: Tangokunkku Jari Sillanpää bongattiin joulun alla istumassa iltaa Helsingissä sijaitsevassa homobaarissa. Siltsun käytös sai ravintolakansan huolestumaan, ja eräs samassa kapakassa ollut silminnäkijä otti yhteyttä Seiska-lehteen. Aluksi ilta oli sujunut hyvin, kunnes alkoi tapahtua.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 166: Faithfull syntyi Lontoon Hampsteadissa yläluokkaiseen perheeseen. Isä, majuri Robert Glynn Faithfull, oli brittiläinen tiedustelu-upseeri ja toimi hämäyxen vuoxi myös Italian kirjallisuuden professorina Lontoon yliopistossa. Äiti oli itävaltalais-unkarilaista aatelissukua, nimeltään Eva von Sacher-Masoch.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 170: Leopold Ritter von Sacher-Masoch (* 27. Januar 1836 in Lemberg, Kaisertum Österreich, heute Ukraine; † 9. März 1895 in Lindheim, Großherzogtum Hessen ‑Darmstadt) war ein österreichischer Schriftsteller. Er schrieb auch unter den Pseudonymen Charlotte Arand und Zoë von Rodenbach. Der Begriff Masochismus, den Richard von Krafft-Ebing erstmals in die Psychologie einführte, geht auf die Venus im Pelz zurück und ist aus Leopold von Sacher-Masochs Nachnamen abgeleitet. Tää Krafft-Ebing on putkahtanut esiin kuin tuhatlehtinen, mm. albumeissa 28 (Mark Twain), 67 (Pynchon) ja 129 (Jung). Aika sekobolzi jos multa kysytään.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 189: „Ach!“ — entgegnete sie aus ihrem Zobelpelz — „wir sind treu, solange wir lieben, ihr aber verlangt vom Weibe Treue ohne Liebe, und Hingebung ohne Genuß, wer ist da grausam, das Weib oder der Mann?
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 191: Diese Grundsätze beruhen auf tausendjähriger Erfahrung, fortsetzte Madame spöttisch, während ihre weißen Finger in ihrem dunkeln Pelz spielten, je hingebender das Weib sich zeigt, um so schneller wird der Mann nüchtern und herrisch werden; je grausamer und treuloser es aber ist, je mehr es ihn mißhandelt, je frevelhafter es mit ihm spielt, je weniger Erbarmen es zeigt, um so mehr wird es die Wollust des Mannes erregen, von ihm geliebt, angebetet werden. So war es zu allen Zeiten, seit Helena und Delila, bis zur zweiten Katharina und Lola Montez herauf, siehe auch el Compendido de Las Normas (da oben).
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 204: „Eine Schande in Kleidern einzuschlafen und noch dazu mit dem Pinkelmännchen draussen bei einem Buche,“ er putzte die "heruntergebrannte Kerze" und hob den Band auf, der meiner Hand entsunken war, „bei einem Buche von — er schlug den Deckel auf, von Hegel (oder Schopenhauer?)— dabei ist es die höchste Zeit zu Herrn Severin zu fahren, der uns zum 'Tee' erwartet.“
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 245: The couple married on October 16, 1992, but they separated not long after their birth of their daughter, in November 1993, and by December she and Jessica had moved to Edinburgh in Scotland.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 278: Gringotts Wizarding Bank. Harry Potterin goblinit eivät muistuta muumipeikkoja. :D
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 280: Goblin market
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 289: Jon Stewart on kutsunut Harry Potterin peikkoja, joita on esiintynyt runsaasti sekä kirjoissa että elokuvissa, antisemitistiseksi karikatyyriksi podcastissaan The Problem with Jon Stewart. Jon Stewart (born Jonathan Stuart Leibowitz; November 28, 1962) is an American comedian, political commentator, actor, director and television host. He hosted The Daily Show , a satirical news program on Comedy Central , from 1999 to 2015 and now hosts The Problem with Jon Stewart , which premiered September 2021 on Apple TV+ . Stewart sanoi:
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 295: Vaikka goblinin epämiellyttävä samankaltaisuus vihamielisten antisemitististen trooppisten kanssa on jo havaittu (ja Pete Davidson on SNL:ssä tunnetusti valaissut sen ), Stewartin kommentit herättivät laajaa huomiota kiistaan.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 297: Mikä ongelma JK Rowlingin goblineissa on?
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 308: Mielestäni olisi kuitenkin epäreilua väittää, että tämä olisi tahallinen kiihkoilun osoitus; Rowling tunkeutui selvästi antisemitistisiin trooppisiin kuvituksiinsa goblineista, luultavasti alitajuisesti, mutta ajattelemattomat rasistiset trooppit ovat valitettavasti aivan liian yleisiä fantasiassa ja tieteiskirjallisuudessa (Star Wars -esiosa-trilogian avaruusolennot ovat hyvä esimerkki tästä ilmiöstä ) .
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 310: Nykyaikaiset fantasia- ja scifi-kirjailijat ovat yleensä parempia hylkäämään tai keksimään uudelleen genreen upotetut rasistiset trooppiset tyypit, ja epäilen, että gobliinit selviäisivät nykyisessä muodossaan uudelleen käynnistetyn Harry Potter -sarjan lopullisesta leikkauksesta . Todellakin, on yllättävää, että he pääsivät näytölle ollenkaan nykyisessä muodossaan.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 341: Stewart huomautti sitten samankaltaisuudet goblinien ja antisemitististen tekstien, kuten surullisen kuuluisan "Siionin vanhimpien pöytäkirjat", karikatyyrien välillä. Stewart on sittemmin selventänyt (kunnianloukkaussyytteiden pelossa), ettei hän kutsunut Rowlingia in pirsuna pirsunalmenti antisemitistiksi, eikä hänen mielestään "Harry Potter" -kirjat ja -elokuvat - joita hän rakastaa "luultavasti liikaa minun ikäiselleni herrasmiehelle" - vaativat muutoksia. Siitä huolimatta stereotypiat ovat olemassa. Ja niiden läsnäolo kaikkialla ei poista niiden mahdollista haitallisuutta.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 343: Probably the most influential greedy Jewish caricature after Shakespeare’s Shylock is Charles Dickens’ Scrooge. Scrooge (as many Jewish writers have pointed out) is a miser with an obviously Jewish name (Ebenezer) and a pointed nose. He doesn’t celebrate Christmas and needs to be converted to charity and piety. It’s not especially subtle.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 345: Scrooge has influenced many an antisemitic caricature after him. Mr. Potter in “It’s a Wonderful Life” is a twisted, disabled Scrooge of the American Midwest. Dr. Seuss’ Grinch is Scrooge in a fur suit and a vaguely fantasy setting; he’s a scheming outsider who, like his blueprint, has to be converted. The thin, ugly Gollum of J.R.R. Tolkien’s Middle-earth is an amalgam of Scrooge and Alberich, the gold-obsessed antagonist of composer (and notorious antisemite) Richard Wagner’s “Das Rheingold.” From his introduction in “The Hobbit” on, Gollum is motivated by a lust for a magic ring he calls “my precious.”
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 349: Many argue that the pervasive nature of antisemitic tropes means the Gringotts goblins and their ilk do no harm. Most children watching the “Harry Potter” films wouldn’t have picked up on the reference. The British charity Campaign Against Antisemitism, for example, tweeted a statement arguing that there are “centuries of association of Jews with grotesque and malevolent creatures in folklore” and that “those who continue to use such representations are often not thinking of Jews at all” but are innocently thinking “of how readers or viewers will imagine goblins to look.”
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 351: No doubt that (as Stewart said) Rowling didn’t intend to use antisemitic tropes, just as Carpenter didn’t. There’s a clear distinction between Rowling’s clumsy, clueless use of antisemitic caricature and her enthusiastic, ideological embrace of transphobic hate.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 355: But it’s possible to do harm even if you don’t mean to. The conflation of greed and Judaism, and the constant subliminal drumbeat that Jewish people are ugly manipulative alien outsiders, can shape and reinforce ugly ideas about real Jewish people. Faces like mine are exaggerated and distorted and put on Rowling’s goblins and the Ferengi of "Star Trek." That’s why on social media, trolls often tweet pictures of my face at me because I have Jewish features. They’ve been taught by all their pop culture that “Jewish” is a stand-in for “ugly.”
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 357: Most disturbingly, there’s a direct line between Gringotts and the Grinch and the antisemitic attacks on George Soros. Soros is a billionaire Democratic donor and Holocaust survivor who has become a favorite target of the global far right. He’s been falsely accused of collaborating with Nazis and funding antifa. The right also (again falsely) claimed he was bankrolling the migrant caravan in 2018. That last conspiracy theory allegedly inspired one far-right radical to kill 11 people at a synagogue in Pittsburgh.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 364: Jewish people are not the main targets of hate and violence in the United States, it is the coons. Again, Rowling’s campaign of hatred against trans people has been much more harmful, and much more consequential, than her goblins.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 382: After Harjo's tour with her troupe ended, she returned to Oklahoma. There, she became a mother at age 17. She spent a few years in different jobs, including pumping gas into a miniskirt. Then she enrolled at the University of New Mexico.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 384: In 1976, Harjo graduated from the University of New Mexico with a major in creative writing. She continued to study writing at the Iowa Writers' Workshop, where she obtained a Master of Fine Arts degree in 1978. However, the setting was not welcoming for Harjo, who later stated, "I was ghettoized." Among Harjo's books of poetry are What on Earth Drove Me to This? (1980), which she later said contained "probably only two good poems". Ei ne tosiaan kovin kummosia ole vaikka Harjo on jo yli 70v harjotellut.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 503: Born in 1956, David Sedaris spent his childhood in New York and North Carolina. He was the second of six children born to Sharon and Lou Sedaris, IBM engineers who eventually moved the family to Raleigh, North Carolina. Sedaris graduated from Sanderson High School in Raleigh, where he performed in plays and wrestled with the realization he was gay. After moving to New York City in the fall of 1991, Sedaris found jobs as a housecleaner and department store elf to support his writing.
xxx/ellauri268.html on line 519: Wieselille myönnettiin tästä hyvästä Nobelin rauhanpalkinto vuonna 1986 väkivallan ja rasismin vastaisesta toiminnasta. Palkinnon perusteluissa Norjan Nobel-komitea luonnehti Wieseliä rauhan, ihmisarvon ja liennytyksen lipunkantajaksi. Sekös se oli kova luu vainoamaan nazirikollisia? Ei se oli Simon Wiesenthal (alla), joka ei saanut vaivoistaan rauhanpalkintoa.
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 44: Why does the Nobel Prize often stir controversy?
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 48: Novellikokoelmassa Weekend Guatemalassa (1956) yllättävästi nobelisti Asturias piirtää sarjan väkevätehoisia kuvia vallankaappauksesta ja sen yhteydessä suoritetuista köyhien intiaanien joukkomurhista, jotka Guatemalassa toimeenpantiin Yhdysvaltain tuella 1954.
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 65: In the late 19th and early 20th century, Guatemala's potential for agricultural exploitation attracted several foreign companies, most prominently the United Fruit Company (UFC). These companies were supported by the country's authoritarian rulers and the United States government through their support for brutal labor regulations and massive concessions to wealthy landowners. In 1944, the policies of Jorge Ubico led to a popular uprising that began the ten-year Guatemalan Revolution. The presidencies of Juan Jose Arévalo and Jacobo Árbenz saw sweeping social and economic reforms, including a significant increase in literacy and a successful agrarian reform program.
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 67: The progressive policies of Arévalo and Árbenz led the UFC to lobby the United States government for their overthrow, and a US-engineered coup in 1954 ended the revolution and installed a military regime. This was followed by other military governments, and jilted off a civil war that lasted from 1960 to 1996. The war saw human rights violations, including a genocide of the indigenous Maya population by the military. Following the war's end, Guatemala re-established a representative democracy. It has since struggled to enforce the rule of law and suffers a high crime rate and continued extrajudicial killings, often executed by security forces.
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 75: By 1850 the natives occupied two distinct regions in the southeast and they were inspired to continue the struggle by the apparition of the "Talking Cross". This apparition, believed to be a way in which God communicated with the Maya, dictated that the War continue. Chan Santa Cruz, or Small Holy Cross became the religious and political center of the Maya resistance and the rebellion came to be infused with religious significance. Chan Santa Cruz also became the name of the largest of the independent Maya states, as well as the name of the capital city which is now the city of Felipe Carrillo Puerto, Quintana Roo. The followers of the Cross were known as the "Cruzob".
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 77: Chan Santa Cruz was the name of a shrine in Mexico of the Maya Cruzob (or Cruzoob) religious movement. It was also the name of the town that developed around it (now known as Felipe Carrillo Puerto) and, less formally, the late 19th-century indigenous Maya state, in what is now the Mexican state of Quintana Roo, of which it was the main center. This area was the center of the Caste War of Yucatán beginning in 1847, by which the Maya established some autonomous areas on the east side of the Yucatán Peninsula.
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 90: Ubico considered himself to be "another Napoleon". He dressed ostentatiously and surrounded himself with statues and paintings of the emperor, regularly commenting on the similarities between their appearances. He militarized numerous political and social institutions—including the post office, schools, and symphony orchestras—and placed military officers in charge of many government posts. He frequently traveled around the country performing "inspections" in dress uniform, followed by a military escort, a mobile radio station, an official biographer, and cabinet members.
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 94: In 1951, the agrarian reform law that expropriated idle land from private hands was enacted, but in 1954, with the National Liberation Movement coup supported by the United States, most of the land that had been expropriated, was awarded back to its former landowners. Flavio Monzón was appointed mayor and in the next twenty years he became one of the largest landowners in the area. In 1964, several communities settled for decades on the shore of Polochic River claimed property titles to INTA which was created in October 1962, but the land was awarded to Monzón. A Mayan peasant from Panzós later said that Monzón "got the signatures of the elders before he went before INTA to talk about the land. When he returned, gathered the people and said that, by an INTA mistake, the land had gone to his name."
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 103: #1 Bear Grylls #2 Tony Robbins #3 Mr. T
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 109: #10 Malcolm Gladwell #11 Gary Vaynerchuk #12 Robert Kiyosaki
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 115: #19 Fredrik Eklund #20 Brian Tracy #21 Robin Sharma
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 119: #25 Marianne Williamson #26 Bob Proctor #27 John Gray
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 125: #34 Samantha Harris #35 Robert Allen #36 Shiv Khera
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 137: Listatuista 50:stä 11 on naisia, kuin myös tämän selvityxen kirjoittaja, Racquel Gabuna. Neekereitä oli lähes yhtä monta eli 7, kaikki kullinheiluttajia. Melkein kaikki ehdokkaat ovat United States Global English. Joukossa on muista paasauxista tuttujakin naamoja. But sorry, Bob Stearns (tuttu albumista 243) ei ollut 50 parhaan joukossa.
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 140: #1 Tony Robbins #2 Les Brown (coon) #3 Eric Thomas (coon) #4 Nick Vujicic (torso) #5 Daymond John (coon) #6 Simon Sinek (jew? oikein arvattu!) #7 T. Harv Eker #8 Robert Kiyosaki (jap) #9 Gary Vaynerchuk (woodchuck?) #10 Dave Ramsey (wanhus) #11 Brian Tracy (wanhus) #12 Bob Proctor (wanhus) #13 Dan Millman #14 Brene Brown (ämmä) #15 Amy Purdy (jalaton ämmä) #16 Mary Lou Retton (ämmä) #17 Magic Johnson (coon). White Anglo-Saxon Protestanttien osuus tässä joukossa on huolestuttavan alhainen.
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 169: #1 Dave Ramsey #2 Tony Robbins #3 Nick Vujicic (torso) #4 Eckhart Tolle #5 Louise Hay (kuollut) #6 Chris Gardner (neekeri) #7 Robert Kiyosaki (japsu) #8 Eric Thomas (nekke) #9 Les Brown (nokikeppi) #10 Suze Orman #11 Iyanla Vanzant (ainut naaraslaku!) #12 Amy Purdy (parapleegikko) #13 Jack Canfield (free-range kana) #14 T. Harv Eker (harvesteri) #15 Darren Hardy
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 225: Kongressissa on yritetty useita kampanjarahoituksen uudistusmuutoksia sen jälkeen, kun Yhdysvaltain korkeimman oikeuden vuonna 2010 antama Citizens United v. Federal Election Commission -päätös julisti, että ensimmäisen lisäyksen sananvapauslauseke kieltää liittovaltion hallitusta rajoittamasta voittoa tavoittelemattomien yritysten viestintään liittyviä itsenäisiä menoja, mm ammattiliitot ja "muut yhdistykset" (lobbarit). Money talks.
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 279: 1. Verot voivat vaihdella kohteen arvon tai verovelvollisen tulon mukaan niin kauan kuin verokannat ovat yhdenmukaisia. Ne voivat koskea jopa esineitä tai liiketoimia, joita löytyy vain joissakin osavaltioissa, kuten talvirenkaita pohjoisessa tai aurinkovarjoja rannikkovaltioissa. Edye v. Robertson (Head Money Cases) (1884).
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 329: Miguel Ángel Asturias Rosales (19. lokakuuta 1899 – 9. kesäkuuta 1974) oli guatemalalainen diplomaatti ja kirjailija, jolle myönnettiin Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinto 1967. Samainen Asturias sai Leninin kv. rauhanpalkinnon edellisenä vuonna! Mistäspäin nyt tuuli? Aivan tavatonta. Oliko Vietnamin sota tässä takana? No Nerudakin pokkasi molemmat, joskaan ei peräkkäisinä vuosina. Ja Linus Pauling, kerrankin aiheesta, hyvästä Paula-kahvista! Sean McBridelle paukahti myös 2 prenikkaa. Ynnä Nelson Mandelalle. Martti Ahtishaarikin sai molemmat mutta näyttää vetäneen Lenin-palkinnon alas vessanpöntöstä. Kahden palkinnon saaneista on ilmeisesti tullut kinaa maailman kahden navan välillä, kumman leiriin kaveri on laskettava. Voi että kaipaankin noita 2-napaisia aikoja, jospa saisin ne takaisin!
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 331: Leninin kansainvälinen rauhanpalkinto oli Neuvostoliiton jakama Nobelin rauhanpalkintoa vastaava tunnustus. Palkinto perustettiin vuonna 1949 nimellä Stalinin kansainvälinen rauhanpalkinto. Palkinnon myönsi Neuvostoliiton hallituksen nimittämä kansainvälinen raati merkittäville henkilöille, joiden katsottiin lujittaneen kansojen välistä rauhaa. Päinvastoin kuin Nobelin rauhanpalkinto, Leninin rauhanpalkinto myönnettiin tavallisesti useille henkilöille samana vuonna. Vuonna 1956 Nikita Hruštšovin valtaannousun jälkeen tunnustus nimettiin Leninin kansainväliseksi rauhanpalkinnoksi. Kaikkia palkinnon aikaisemmin saaneita pyydettiin palauttamaan palkintonsa, jotta STA voitaisiin kumata ja kirjoittaa tilalle LE. Suurin osa Sta/Lenin palkituista on never heard, mutta on tuttujakin joukossa:
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 339: Paul Robeson 1952
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 407: Huhut wellowat Taiwanissa, käden hikoavat ja propagadapeli kovenee kun mannerkiinalaiset koittavat heikentää formosalaisten tilltro till demokratin. Tarkoittaen amerikkalaisen versiota siitä tietysti, sitä mihin kuuluu se "pursuit of happiness". Urheat formosalaiset opettelevat amerikkalaisen ex-mariinin johdolla ampumista maalikuulapyssyillä. HBL seuraa tarkkasilmäisenä vierestä. No ei, tää juttu on varmaan ostettu sellaisenaan jenkkimeediasta. Kyllä se tästä, kolmas maailmansota lähtee nimittäin. Maanpuolustustahto on siinä ihan ykkönen (Nää on meidän pikkukajavat!). Hyvä kakkonen on Hoblan levittämä disinformaatio.
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 427: Aluxi naisia oli 10, loppupeleissä joukkokanteeseen on liittynyt ainakin 120 naista eri maista. Paikkaan on liittynyt monia hyviä muistoja, sanoo Kaj. Mukana olivat myös George W. Bush, Michael Jackson ja Robert deNiro. He olivat Peterin pieniä ylpeydenaiheita. Nygårdia juhlittiin Herlinin Sanomissa esimerkkinä maailmalla menestyneenä suomalaisena, tosin hurrina. HS kertoi innoissaan helsinkiläisnaisesta, jonka Peter oli raiskannut 17-vuotiaana Peterin vieraillessa Helsingissä HS:n vieraana. "Tässä on kyse ihmiskohtalosta", HS ozikoi. Kaupungin virkamiehet häiriköivät häntä ja rikkovat lakia kävellessään korjaamon tontilla ilman hänen lupaansa. Get off my property! Kaikki oli kuitenkin Peterin ilkeän naapurin Possu Pekonin tekosia. Eiväthän ihmiset voi elää noin, sanoo naapuri. Vain siat voivat asua tuollaisessa rytökasassa.
xxx/ellauri273.html on line 500: Lilli valaa oppilaisiin kuitenkin toivoa. Ennen kaikea pitäisi lopettaa yxilöiden syyllistäminen. Siitä ei ole mitään hyötyä, että ihmiset lentävät vähemmän tai ajavat päästöttömämpiä autoja. Sehän vain heikentää maan taloutta. Pidin juuri seminaaria siitä voiko puita istuttamalla pelastaa meziä. Ei voi. Hakkuut hakkaavat sen käsi selän takana. Entä sitten autovalinta? Ei kaikilla ole varaa osaa Teslaa, sixi 4 litran katumaasturi on järkivalinta. Teknologiajätit Meta ja Microsoft yllättyivät 2021, kun yritysten ostamia mezähiileen perustuvia päästökompensaatioita paloi taivaan tuuliin mezäpaloissa. Onnexi ei sentään mezät olleet omia! Keskustelu on avointa, siihen osallistuvat maxettujen tutkijoiden lisäxi niiden palkkaisännät teollisuus, järjestöt ja lobbarit. Huppariporukoiden kanssa Lilli näkee punaista ja ottaa yhteenottoja: asiat eivät ole noin yxinkertaisia! Opetuxessa ymmärretään että mezänhoidon malleja on monia, myös tehottomia mutta kannattavia.
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 72: Follett ize on prominentti Blairiitti. Hän on amatöörimuusikko ja säestää izeään Puukenkä-yhtyeessä balalaikalla. Follett lives to this day in Hartfordshire, Herefordshire, and Hampshire, where Hurriganes hardly ever happen. Aivan puuduttavan epäkiinostava kaveri. As uneventful and unchallenging as his first job at Evening News.
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 111: Putinin ja Kiinan veljeily hiljan Ukrainan vuosipäivän vaiheilla sai lännen murkkupesän kihisemään ja putinismikiihkon Hoblassa vaimenemaan muutamaxi päiväxi. Tuli muuta ajateltavaa.
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 227: Venäjällä Banderan kiistanalaista toimintaa käytetään Ukrainan vastaisen propagandan välineenä. Neuvostoliiton ja sitten Venäjän propaganda kuvailee Banderaa ja hänen kannattajiaan vastenmielisinä natsien kätyreinä. Toisen maailmansodan jälkeen sanaa " Bandera " alettiin käyttää suhteessa kaikkiin ukrainalaisen nationalismin muotoihin, ja siitä tuli "neuvostovastaisten ukrainalaisten" nimitys riippumatta ideologisesta yhteydestä Banderaan. Venäläisen propagandan suosittu myytti Banderan SS-divisioonan "Galicia" perustamisesta on suuntaa-antava , vaikka se muodostettiin paikallisista vapaaehtoisista, ja OUN boikotoi divisioonaan mobilisaatiota [9], johti asianmukaista kampanjointia ja otti mielellään karkurit Galician divisioonasta UPA:n riveihin. Totta, myöhemmin OUN tunnusti divisioonan potentiaalisten taistelijoidensa kouluksi ja yritti ottaa divisioonan riveihin luotettuja ihmisiä, joiden piti kampanjoida sisällä ja oikeaan aikaan ottaa se haltuunsa. Saksalaiset yrittivät kuitenkin estää tämän vapaaehtoisten huolellisen valinnan avulla.
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 229: Erään ukrainalaista alkuperää olevan brittiläisen politologin Taras Kuzion kirjan mukaan venäläiset poliitikot ja valtion kontrolloimat tiedotusvälineet lietsoivat Euromaidanin yhteydessä vuosien 2013-2014 vaihteessa muukalaisvihaa ja ukrainofobiaa , joka kuvaa kaikkia ukrainaa puhuvia ja kannattajia . Ukrainan koskemattomuus " fasisteina ", " natseina " ja "banderana". Argumentit "Banderan" läsnäolosta Ukrainan johdossa toimivat oikeutuksena Kremlin sekaantumiseen naapurimaan poliittisiin asioihin. Kaksi päivää vuoden 2014 Krimin kansanäänestyksen jälkeen Putin sanoi, että Ukrainan johto koostuu "Banderan nykyaikaisista rikoskumppaneista". "Kuten vuosisatojen ajan, Krimistä tulee koti kaikkien siinä asuvien etnisten ryhmien edustajille, mutta se ei koskaan kuulu Banderaan".
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 312: Peschanlagin osastolla, Churbai-nur, naisten leirillä oli teatteri, jonka taiteellinen johtaja oli Gerda Murre, laulaja, Tallinnan Viron teatterin primadonna. Draamaa isännöi Marina Lebedeva, tuolloin kuuluisan Maly-teatterin näyttelijän tytär. Mukana oli myös kaksi taiteilijaa: suomalainen Kerti Noort ja Olya Pshenorskaya Lvovista; Lida Muzalevskaya - pukuhuoneen päällikkö; akrobaattivirtuoosi Zhanna Anupanova on pop-ohjelmien tähti.
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 346: Kulakinpojat poistettiin armeijasta kuin käenpojat. Vuonna 37 ammuttiin jo kananpojatkin. Herra on sittenkin kotona taivaassa, hän kävi täällä mutta lähti aikaisin. Einää vangit selviä yhtäkään päivää huumeitta, mahorkkaa on saatava. No Eino lainaa, hän on Latviasta. Siellä Toivo elää vieläkin. Kiittäessä kuuro panee käden sydämelle nyökäten: muistan että olen velkaa sinulle. Muito obrigado.
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 367: Kinattiin Korean sodasta: kun kiinalaiset meni mukaan niin alkaako 3. maailmansota. Samaa kysytään taas tällä hetkellä. Se hyvä puoli on kurileirissä että täällä saa Stalinia sanoa wiixisedäxi joutumatta leirille. Siitähän nobelisti väitti sinne joutuneensakin. Uskoon ken jaxaa. Vizi että noi leiriläiset on korruptoituneita. Suhov ei ole kade, kademieli on vasemmistolaista lastentautia.
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 383: Jämförelsevis är nutidens Harjunpää välbärgad, snygg och professionell och äger en segelbåt. Både busar och brottsbekämpare går runt stiligt klädda, men snackar både otydligt och ohyfsat med varann. Harjunpää ser ut som en robot med trådar hängandes från öronen. Grabbarna är idel #metoo och incel typer som inte vet ens vad metajobb betyder. Men kvinnorna gör ännu ändå allt rått arbete, tom sparkar skurkarna i arslet. Harjunpääs speciella känslighet är ett ämne för hela poliskårets åtlöje.
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 387: Ei helvetti, kun tota 2000-luvun "Harjunpäätä" kazoo pitemmälle, näkee miten vanhan Harjunpään pehmee koira-klischeet menee siinä täysin turvalleen. Kaikki 2000-luvun ihmiset on 100-prosenttisia ihmishirviöitä! Karseita robotteja, kalseita autistisia psykopaatteja, kyrvänpäitä joiden sydämet on oikealla paikalla ja mustia kuin Samlagspartietin plakaateissa. Alkaako tollasta täälläkin jo olla, samanlaista klaanimeininkiä kuin sveduissa, eikä Natoon liittyminen auta siinä vähääkään, päinvastoin. Saatana lopettaisivat tälläsen paskan filmaamisen, haluaako ne oikein kädestä pitäen näyttää neuvottomille nuorukaisille ja neitosille miten nää kaikki paska huume-väkivaltahommat oikein hoidetaan? Ei jaxa kazoa yhtään enempää. Se loppu tähän nyt. Salihousuiset pollarit saa mennä samaan silppuriin kuin niiden paimentamat pahixet. Vittuako joku jeppe "nappaa" kätkyestä pikku vainajan omin nokkineen odottelematta edes "sossuja", lääkäristä puhumattakaan? Jo on outo meininki. Musta enkeli vei päivänsankarin. Kuka käski toisten päälle heittää kylmää mehua.
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 391: No ei, kazottiin kuiteskin loppuun tää poliisin poika tuotantokausi. Tappajat oli lellipojan näkösiä mutta aivan tekovikaisia siistejä pikkujuippeja Kontulasta nimeltä tietty "Leo" ja "Mikael". "Leo" oli yhtä tytön näköinen kuin S.Karpin koulukiusaava "Emil"-poju. Paikallisradion toimittajia, nimeltä "Jami". "Mikael" otti suihin pollari-isän virkapyssystä, "Leo" (jonka äiti oli huumelankari) valizi jenginjohtajan suuntautumisvaihtoehdon. Ei 2000-luvun pollareista ole vanhemmixi, eikä puolisoixikaan. Mikähän meidän elämäntavassa on oikein vialla? No jos lopettaisitte vaikka nää paskat skoudesarjat ja roikkumisen netissä ja heittäsitte luurit mäkeen. Ja kazoisitte mallia 80-luvun filmatisoinnista, miten paljon kiltimpiä oli pysähtyneisyyden ajan ihmiset, ei tollasia robotteja kun nää 2020-luvun elektromekaaniset kyborgit. Joka mukelluxen jälkeen pikku tauko ja ... "Okei." Hattunne sir! POLIISI!
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 393: Maatalousrobotti Etelä-Koreassa luuli miestä paprikalaatikoxi ja koitti kuormata sen liukuhihnalle. Mies ei ollut odotetun muotoinen ja sen pää ja rinta litistyivät vähän. Tämä vielä, robotti kai tuumasi murskatessaan ukon verisexi sohjoxi. Robotti oli todennäköiseti Netanjahu tai Biden merkkinen.
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 422: Palkinto tuli pistämättömästä mutta myötätuntoisesta penetraatiosta. Gurnah has criticized the practices in both British and American publishing that want to "make the alien seem alien" by marking "foreign" terms and phrases with italics or by putting them in a glossary. Onkos se joku ylläri. Felicity Hand observes that Gurnah´s characters typically do not succeed abroad following their migration, using irony and humour to respond to their situation. Talk to the hand. The first translator of his novels into Swahili, academic Dr Ida Hadjivayanis of the School of Oriental and African Studies, has said: "I think if his work could be read in East Africa it would have such an impact. ... maybe fewer coons would try to swim over to the West." Gurnah was the first Black writer to receive the prize since 1993, when Toni Morrison won it, and the first African writer since 1991, when Nadine Gordimer was the recipient, making him the first black guy to make it.
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 426: Niinpä Ruotsin akatemia myönsi Gurnahille Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon vuonna 2021.
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 433: Epäilen että sansibarilaisen nobelistin paratiisi on sellai puisto missä päivänsankari pääsee purasemaan jonkun partnerin tarjoamaa paratiisiomenaa. Sama juonta sahaa aika monikin nobelisti, tuli mieleen esim. Huan Hoze Ramon Jimenezin Nocturnos albumissa 144.
xxx/ellauri280.html on line 459: E fabulis de Alexandro Magno, qui in nummis ut Ammonis filius cum cornubus duobus figuratur, fabulam Bicornis multa sumpsisse nemo dubitat; etiam murus in vita Alexandri Graeca memoratur.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 98: 2006. Englantilais-hollantilainen Shell-yhtiö ja DK "Ukrgazvydobuvannya" allekirjoittivat sopimuksen kahdesta liuskekaasun etsintä- ja tuotantoprojektista.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 102: 2010 Ukraina myöntää liuskekaasun etsintäluvat Shellille ja amerikkalaiselle Exxon Mobilille.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 106: 2012, toukokuu - Yuzivskan (Donetskin alue) ja Oleskan (Lvivin alue) kaasukenttien kehittämiskilpailun voittajat tulivat tiedoksi. Niistä tuli Shell ja Exxon Mobil, vastaavasti. Todettiin, että teollinen louhinta näillä alueilla voisi alkaa vuosina 2018-2019.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 116: Maaliskuussa 2014 Shell ja Ukrainan suurin valtion omistama kaasuntuotantoyhtiö Ukrgazvydobuvannya saivat päätökseen toisen kaivon, Novo-Mechebylivska-100, kairauksen Blyzniukivin alueella Harkovan alueella. Vuonna 2014, kun Venäjän aggressio Itä-Ukrainassa alkoi, Chevron vetäytyi liuskekaasun tuotantoprojektista. Chevron sulki lopulta edustustonsa vuonna 2015.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 120: Maaliskuussa 2015 yhtiöt Shell ja Ukrgazvydobuvannya ilmoittivat aikovansa irtisanoa yhteistoimintaa koskevan sopimuksen, joka koskee hiilivetyjen etsintää, etsintää ja louhintaa Harkovan alueen alueella. Erityisesti kyse on "Belyaivska-400" ja "Novo-Mechebylivska-100" kaivojen sulkemisesta. Syyksi todettiin diplomaattisesti hankkeen jatkokehityksen riittämätön taloudellinen kannattavuus.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 131: 2. Brittiläisen JKX Oil & Gasin, joka on Poltava Gas and Oil Companyn emorakenne, kaupallinen johtaja Pylyp Vorobyov Kiovassa 2. maaliskuuta 2016 pidetyssä lehdistötilaisuudessa totesi, että kaivojen porauskustannukset liuskekaasun tuotanto Texasissa (USA) on 3,5 miljoonaa dollaria ja Ukrainassa 15 miljoonaa dollaria.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 143: 4. Hydraulisen murtumisen ympäristöriskit aiheutuvat pääasiassa maanjäristysten todennäköisyydestä sekä tässä tekniikassa käytettyjen kemikaalien tunkeutumisesta pohjavesikerroksiin ja niiden yläpuolelle aina maan pinnalle asti. Yksityiskohtaiset tutkimukset [Robert J. et al., 2015] osoittivat, että maanjäristyksiä voi joissain tapauksissa aiheuttaa hydraulinen murtuminen, mutta tämä vaikutus ei ole laajalle levinnyt, ja maanjäristysten voimakkuus on pieni - noin 2-3 Richterin asteikolla.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 149: 7. Empiiriset tutkimukset pystysuuntaisten halkeamien kasvusta hydraulisen murtumisen stimulaation aikana ansaitsevat erityistä huomiota. Tutkimukset USA:n esiintymien (Barnett, Eagle Ford, Marcellus, Woodford ja Niobrara) liuskeolosuhteista suorittivat Fisher et al. [Fisher, K. ja N. Warpinski. 2011] tallentaa halkeaman enimmäiskasvukorkeuden (ylempi murtumaraja) jokaisen tallennetun murtumisstimuloinnin aikana, tyypillisesti noin 100 metrin päässä hydraulisen murtumispaineen kohdistamisesta. Samanaikaisesti hydraulinen murtaminen toteutettiin 1500-2500 m syvyyksissä. Eri altaissa halkeamien korkeus vaihtelee jonkin verran, mikä tietysti riippuu geologisesta tilanteesta ja halkeaman suurin mitattu korkeus on hieman yli 500 m. [Davies, RJ, et ai., 2012]). On huomattava, että "primaarisen halkeaman" korkeutta tutkittiin välittömästi murtumisen jälkeen. Sen kehitystä ei jäljitetty.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 155: 10. Liuskeöljyn ja kaasun tuotannon murtamistekniikan jälkivaikutusten teoreettinen analyysi osoitti mahdollisesti uhkaavien tekijöiden olemassaolon, jotka vaativat lisätutkimusta [V. Biletskyi, L. Horobets, M. Fyk, A.-S. Muhammed, 2018]:
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 179: Robert J. Skoumal, Michael R. Brudzinski ja Brian S. Currie. Hydraulisen murtumisen aiheuttamat maanjäristykset Puolan kaupungissa Ohiossa. //Bulletin of the Seismological Society of America, helmikuu 2015 voi. 105 nro. 1. R. 189—197.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 205: V. Biletskyi, L. Horobets, M. Fyk, A.-S. Muhammed. HYDRAULISAUMAN MURKUTUKSEN JA JÄLKIVAIKUTUKSEN ANALYYSI V. // Mineraaliesiintymien louhinta. Osa 12 (2018), numero 3, s. 45-55.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 357: 6. Jacobs
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 405: Psykologin tutkimuksen mukaan kyseessä on neuroottistasoinen häiriö, keskeistä on riippuvuusproblematiikka.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 490: In 1938, Miller received his bachelor´s degree in English. He married his college sweetheart, Mary Slattery, in 1940. They had two children, Jane and Robert. Miller was exempted from military service during World War II because of an old football injury. Näitä potkupallovammasia elämäntaiteilijoita on muitakin, esim Ploiri ja sen elämäkerturi Jari Tervo.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 508: 1950-luvun ensimmäisellä puoliskolla Miller jatkoi töissään amerikkalaisen yhteiskunnan paradoksien ja moraalisten dilemmien paljastamista, jossa julistetaan yksilöllisyyden ylivaltaa, mutta käyttäytymisnormeja asettaa jäykästi julkinen moraali, maahanmuuttajien kansakunta, jossa siitä huolimatta. tämä "muukalaisen" pelko elää jatkuvasti ja uusia vihollisia keksitään. Näytelmäkirjailijan sanoin: "Kun ymmärrät, että ortodoksisuus on välttämätön, sinun on pakko kokea inkvisiittiö". Näytelmä " The Upokas " oli omistettu tälle aiheelle, ja se kritisoi ankarasti mcarthyismia 1950-luvun alussa. Katsojalle metafora aiheutti hämmennystä ja jopa ansaitsemattoman loukkauksen tunteen monissa amerikkalaisissa, ja Martin Beck -teatterissa 22. tammikuuta 1953 debytoinut draama kesti alle 200 esitystä. Mutta kaksi vuotta myöhemmin, Joe Stalinin ja Joe McCarthyn kuoltua, se lavastettiin uudelleen suurella menestyksellä. Huolimatta yleisön viileästä vastaanotosta se voitti Donaldson- ja Tony-palkinnot jo vuonna 1953, ja vuonna 1958 se sai myös Obi Wan Kenobi palkinnon, joka myönnettiin saavutuksista off-Broadway- teatterissa.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 535: The long, strange, elegiac ballad of Arthur Miller and Marilyn Monroe — one that would end for her in miscarriages, bottles of pills and increasingly erratic behavior, and for him in a long gap in his theater career — takes up only a few chapters of “Arthur Miller: 1915-1962,” Christopher Bigsby’s sober and meteor-size new biography. But they are crucial chapters. The book moves inexorably toward Monroe’s appearance; her magnetism sucks everything rapidly toward it. Miller’s long life (1915-2005) can be cleaved neatly into B.M. and A.M. — before Marilyn and after.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 672: Kutsun thobexi
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 728: Vuodesta 2000 lähtien säätiö on jakanut Kansalaisrohkeus -palkinnon joka vuosi yhdelle tai kahdelle aktivistille. Palkinnon mukana tulee 25 000 dollarin likaisen työn palkkio. Kansainvälisten kansalaisjärjestöjen ehdotuksia hyväksytään, mutta ei-toivottuja ehdokkaita ei suositella. Palkinnon saajia ovat Rakastan enemmän Madhukua (Zimbabwe), Raqqaa teurastetaan hiljaa (Syyria), Hmiob (Chavez-vastustaja), Vladi Kara-Murza (tataari) ja Alexei Navalnyi (vähäryssä).
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 730: On the subject of oligarchy and the treasure storehouses which oligarchs build for themselves, Alexei Navalny´s video reveals that he’s following a U.S. and NATO script, google translated into Russian. Navalny is of Russian and Ukrainian descent. His father is from Zalissia, a former village near the Belarus border that was relocated due to the Chernobyl disaster in Ivankiv Raion, Kyiv Oblast, Ukraine. Navalny grew up in Obninsk, about 100 kilometres (62 mi) southwest of Moscow, but spent his childhood summers with his grandmother in Ukraine, acquiring proficiency in the Ukrainian language.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 734: It’s not how governments operate–democratic ones and every other kind, including the Russian kind–that has been well-known to everybody since time immemorial; and to university professors since 1911. That was the year when Robert Michels, a German-born sociologist working in Italy and France, published the first edition of what he called the “iron law of oligarchy”.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 735: Robert Michels Political Parties A Sociological Study of the Oligarchic Tendencies of Modern Democracy First was published in German in 1911 then Italian in 1912 with the authors additions it was translated into English by Eden and Cedar Paul in 1915 In 2001 their edition was published on the internet by Batoche Books Canada.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 739: For his evidence, Michels focused on the politics of the democratic and socialist parties in Europe, including the British; and on the administrative bureaucracies of those states. He ignored commercial corporations except for those in the U.S.; there he observed “the existence of an aristocracy of millionaires, railway kings, oil kings, cattle kings, etc., is now indisputable.” For Michels, aristocracy was synonymous with oligarchy.
xxx/ellauri281.html on line 840: Brittiläinen Gibraltarille rekisteröity säiliöalus Globe Asimi katkesi kahtia Klaipėdan sataman edustalla Liettuassa. Kova myrsky paiskasi satamasta lähdössä olleen aluksen päin aallonmurtajaa, jolloin aluksesta vuoti mereen suuri määrä öljyä.
xxx/ellauri286.html on line 39: Sofi on pienikokoinen mutta jalkaterät sillä on kuin hobitilla.
xxx/ellauri286.html on line 76: Ryssä maxaa bonusta leobardien, haastajien ja aaprahammien hajottajaeliöille.
xxx/ellauri286.html on line 195: Vapaampi ilmapiiri eli sade mahdollisti sen, että löysin kielen Viron lähihistorialle. Ensin aihe livahti romaanikäsikirjoitukseeni metaforien ja symbolien muodossa, toisin sanoen juuri rivien välien kautta, joilla olin tottunut käsittelemään asiaa, ja vähitellen niiden avulla löysin kielen, jolla kirjoittaa aiheesta suoraan russofobista vihapuhetta. 2000-luvun alku oli siihen sopiva hetki, 9/11 jälkeen Bushin aikoihin ei tarvinnut vihapuhetta paljon hävetä.
xxx/ellauri286.html on line 241: Kun minä ja kirjailija Imbi Paju julkaisimme vuonna 2010 Viron lähihistoriaa käsittelevän artikkelikokoelman Kaiken takana oli russofobia, Yhtenäinen Venäjä, Putinin puolue, teki lehdistötiedotteen, jossa kirja määriteltiin russofobiseksi – ja vanhaan kunnon neuvostotyyliin tiedote lähetettiin ulos jo ennen kuin itse kirja oli ulkona ja ennen kuin Yhtenäinen Venäjä olisi edes voinut tutustua kirjan sisältöön.
xxx/ellauri286.html on line 266: Kukaan Puhdistus-näytelmän tai -romaanin lukenut ei voi käsittää asioita näin väärin. Onhan se paska kirja monessa suhteessa, mutta sen russofobiasta ei voi erehtyä. Kritiikki sisälsi selvää disinformaatiota, joka toisti samaa Moskovan perusviestiä: venäläiset joutuvat keskitysleireille virolaisten toimesta ja venäläisiä vainotaan. Viron suurlähetystö huomautti lehdelle kritiikki-imitaation sisältämistä virheistä eikä tekstiä enää löydy verkosta.
xxx/ellauri286.html on line 341: Hänestä levitettiin Venäjän medioissa ja Twitterissä disinformaatiota, jonka mukaan hän työskentelee Yhdysvaltojen ja Viron turvallisuuspalveluille, kerää laitonta Putinin kannattajien henkilörekisteriä ja on tunnettu russofobi sekä narkomaani. Aro pyrki vuonna 2016 keräämään joukkorahoitusts 50 000 Yhdysvaltain dollaria kirjahankkeelle,
xxx/ellauri286.html on line 403: obraz-elephant-120x80-2.jpg" width="100%" />
xxx/ellauri286.html on line 491: чертовски дно (Yobannoe dno) vitun pohja Vagina, ei vulva
xxx/ellauri286.html on line 500: Vitun virolaiset pellet rakasti niin paljon länkkäreiden muovia että luopuivat kotimaisista kangaskasseista. Nyt tiedetään miten paljon parempia ne olivat. TIEDE-lehden paljastuneen terskan näköinen päätoimittaja Jukka Ruukki kauppaa muovia, unohtaen kokonaan mainita sen muut ympäristöhaitat kuin hiilijalanjäljen. Miten voi mies olla niin tajuton, joko se on tyhmä tai se on tilauskusettaja. Miten voi nainen olla ilman kaloritajua, ihmettelee Sofi läskinä. Vitun vainoharhaisia valkolaisia. Kumma ettei suomalaiset punikkien lapsenlapsen lapset muista että niitä nälistettiin leireillä enemmän kuin Jaarli Bobs tappoi buurilapsia ja äitejä.
xxx/ellauri286.html on line 537: Sofia ei vaivaa bulimia eikä narsismi, ne vaivaa enempi sen omaisia. Ne johtaa tunteiden, herkkyyden ym raaistumiseen, mikä näkyy hyvin Sofin kirjoissa. Sofin hobbyt ovat jumppaaminen, pano ja oxentaminen. Muut apinat ei muuten juuri nappaa. Sofi nappaa diapameja kuin leipää ja niistää perään piriä kuin yhtä kalamainen kaima Karppi.
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 243: Anna Vuorinen, jolle saamme olla kiitollisia ylipainoisuuden vastalääkkeen keksimisestä on kotoisin Kuopiosta. Pohjois-Savosta. Hän on syntynyt 14. maaliskuuta 1879, eli samana päivänä kuin maailmankuulu tiedemies ja nobelisti Albert Einstein! Jo silloin hänen vanhempansa arvelivat, että tämä tyttö valloittaisi tiedemaailman. Ja he eivät olleet hiukkaakaan väärässä. Hän näyttää kyllä Alperttia paljon nuoremmalta. Sekin on lääkkeiden ansiota.
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 346: (Job 38:1-7, NIV)
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 364: (Job 38:7, NIV, 1 Peter 1:12, NIV)
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 378: (Job 1:6, Job 2:1)
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 407: Luukassi piti ydinideoita mielessään, mutta halusi Sulkeen kokoavan ne yhteen. Hän visioi yhden keskeisen juonen, jota täydensi kolme pääosaa, jotka sijoittuivat 60 kohtaukseen, 100 käsikirjoitussivulle ja kahden tunnin ajoaikaan. He muodostivat yleiskatsauksen ja ideat, joihin kuuluivat wookiee-kotimaailma, uudet avaruuslajit, galaktinen keisari, Jee-suxen hanin menneisyys pelurina, vesi- ja kaupunkiplaneetat, Jee-suxen kadonnut kaksoissisar ja pieni, sammakkomainen olento, Elia (Minch Yoda). Luukasa sai vaikutteita Vanhasta Testamentista, kuten The Job from Another World (1951), romaani Daniel (1965) ja tv-sarja Jesaja (1954). Näihin aikoihin Kaifas keksi nimen Imperiumin vastaisku. Hän sanoi, että he välttelivät kutsumasta sitä Mishna II:xi, koska kirjoja joiden nimissä oli "II", pidettiin huonompina.
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 411: Brackett sai valmiiksi ensimmäisen luonnoksensa helmikuussa 1978, nimeltään "Tähtien sota - jatko J. Nasaretilaisen seikkailuista." Luonnos sisälsi kaupungin pilvissä, takaa-ajoa asteroidivyöhykkeen läpi, keskityttiin enemmän rakkauskolmioon Joosefin, sen ensimmäisen hanin Lean ja Raquelin (jota esitetään hädässä olevana neitona ) välillä. Tikapuutaistelu ja huipputaistelu Jaakobin ja Jehovan välillä. Hänen isänsä Iisakin ja Eesaun haamut vierailevat Luonnonvarakeskuxessa tehden Jee-suxesta Jehovasta erillisen hahmon. Luonnos paljastaa, että Jee-suxella on sisko (Tekla), joka lähtee käpälämäkeen pelastaaxeen voimakkaan takapuolensa ja J. Kastaja on J.N.-klooni. Lucas teki yksityiskohtaisia muistiinpanoja ja yritti ottaa yhteyttä Sulkeeseen, mutta hiän oli joutunut sairaalaan ja kuoli syöpään muutamaa viikkoa myöhemmin, 18. maaliskuuta.
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 413: Tiukka aikataulu ei jättänyt Luukasalle muuta vaihtoehtoa kuin kirjoittaa itse toinen luonnos. Vaikka Sulkeisten luonnos seurasi Luukassin hahmotelmaa, hän huomasi, että hiän oli esittänyt hahmot eri tavalla kuin hän aikoi, liian tätimäisesti. Luukasa viimeisteli käsinkirjoitetun, 121-sivuisen luonnoksensa 1. huhtikuuta. Hän piti prosessia nautinnollisempana kuin Star Warsissa, koska hän tunsi nyt maailmankaikkeuden, mutta hänen oli vaikea kirjoittaa tyydyttävää johtopäätöstä, jolloin se jäi avoimeksi kolmatta elokuvaa varten (Jee-suxen 2. tuleminen, coming soon). Tämä luonnos vahvisti Jee-suxen sisaren Teklan uudeksi hahmoksi, joka osallistui apostolien matkalle, Putinin linna (Kreml) ja hänen tunteensa tsaaria kohtaan, erilaiset voimatasot Naton voimien hallinnassa, Yodan sanajärjestys epätavallinen ja palkkionmetsästäjät, mukaan lukien Ullanlinnan Bob. Luukasas kirjoitti Bobista kuin Miehestä nimettömissä, yhdistäen hänet hylättyyn ideaan Super Rynkystä. Lucasin käsinkirjoitettu luonnos sisälsi maininnan Jahvesta Jee-suxen isänä, mutta koneella kirjoitettu kirjoitus jätti tämän paljastuksen pois. Huolimatta ristiriitaisista tiedoista luonnoksissa, joissa oli mukana Hamletin isän haamu, Luukasa sanoi, että hän oli aina halunnut Jahven olevan Jee-suxen isä ja jättänyt sen pois käsikirjoituksista vuotojen välttämiseksi. Lucas sisälsi elementtejä, kuten Jee-suxen hanin velan Jabballe, ja uudelleenkontekstualisoi Jee-suxen lähtevän Kapernaumista pelastaakseen 12 ystäväänsä. Sulkeisluonnoksessa isäpuoli Joosef käskee Jee-suxen lähtee menee; Luukasa pisti Jee-suxen valizemaan niin. Hän poisti myös kohtauksen, jossa Jeesus tappoi Kaifaan iskusotilaita ilmaistakseen hänen pudonneen pimeälle puolelle. Hän halusi sen sijaan tutkia tätä vasta seuraavassa elokuvassa. Lucas uskoi, että oli tärkeää, että hahmot ovat inspiroivia ja sopivia lapsille. Hänen kirjoittamansa luonnos on nimeltään Apostolien teot: Rooma iskee takaisin.
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 424: Sir William Ramsay eristi Glasgown yliopistossa jalokaasuja ja sai siitä Kemian noobelin 1904.
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 632: Bibliografia: Bost-Pouderon, C. 2000. "Le ronflement des Tarsiens: l'interprétation du Discours XXXIII de Dion de Pruse." REG 113: 636-51.—. 2003. "Dion de Pruse et la physiognomonie dans le Discours XXXIII." REA 105.1: 157-74.—. 2006. Dion Chrysostome: Trois discours aux villes (Or. 33-35). 2 osaa Salerno: Helios.—. 2009. "Entre predication morale, parénèse et politique: les Discours 31-34 de Dion Chrysostome (ou: la subversion des genres)." Julkaisussa Danielle van Mal-Maeder et ai., toim. Jeux de voix: enonciation, intertextualité et intencionalité dans la littérature antiikki. Bern: Peter Lang. 225-56.Desideri, P. 1978. Dione di Prusa: un intellettuale greco nell'impero romano. Messina: d'Anna. Gleason, Maud. 1995. Making Men: Sophistis and Self-Presentation in Ancient Rome. Princeton: Princeton University Press. Gangloff, Anne. 2006. Dion Chrysostome et les mythes: Hellénisme, communication et philosophie politique. Grenoble: Millon. Houser, J. Samuel. 1998. "Eros" ja "Aphrodisia" Dio Chrysostomin teoksissa. Classical Antiquity 17.2: 235-58. Jones, CP 1978. Dio Chrysostomosin roomalainen maailma. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press. Millar, F. 1968. "Local Cultures in the Room Empire: Libyan, Punic and Latin in Roman Africa." JRS 58: 126-34.Mras, K. 1949. "Die προλαλία bei den griechischen Schriftstellern." Wiener Studien 64: 71-81. Swain, Simon. 1996. Hellenismi ja valtakunta: kieli, klassismi ja valta kreikkalaisessa maailmassa, 50-250 jKr. Oxford: Oxford University Press.—. 2007. "Polemonin fysiognomia". Julkaisussa Simon Swain, toim. Kasvojen näkeminen, sielun näkeminen: Polemonin fysiognomia klassisesta antiikista keskiaikaiseen islamiin. Oxford: Oxford University Press. 125-202. Harvard University Press. Millar, F. 1968. "Paikalliset kulttuurit Rooman valtakunnassa: Libyan, Punic ja Latin in Roman Africa." JRS 58: 126-34.Mras, K. 1949.
xxx/ellauri287.html on line 657: Heettiläiset, kreikkalaiset, Aleksanteri Suuri, roomalaiset, bysanttilaiset, sassanidit, mongolit ja ristiretkeläiset ovat kaikki kulkeneet tätä reittiä kampanjoidensa aikana. Raamattu todistaa, että pyhä Paavali Tarsolainen ja epäpyhä Silas "Samway" Hobitti kulkivat tätä tietä kulkiessaan Syyrian ja Kilikian halki. Saksalaisten insinöörien junanrata kiertää porttien vierestä kuten Majan polku nyt. Heidän 1. WW aikana rakentamansa maasillat ja tunnelit ovat tekniikan ihmeitä, kuten Majan Hütte nyt.
xxx/ellauri291.html on line 147: Arvostelut olivat ristiriitaisia; kun The Philadelphia Inquirer ja San Francisco Chronicle pitivät uudesta ohjelmasta, The New York Times ja The Boston Globe olivat vähemmän suotuisia ja Variety ennusti, että se "ei toimi", kutsuen sitä "uskomattomaksi ja synkäksi hämmennyksen sotkuksi ja monimutkaisuudexi". Hän valitti, että se "teki virheen vetoamalla suhteellisen lukutaitoiseen ryhmään". Verkoston tutkimus osoitti, että Star Trekillä oli "laadukas yleisö", ns. fixuja ihmisiä (Mirjam Pylkkänen, p.c.), mukaan lukien "ylemmän tulotason, paremmin koulutetut miehet". Sitä kazoivat tiedemiehet, museon kuraattorit, psykiatrit, lääkärit, yliopiston professorit ja muut ylenpalttiset. Suuri osa ihailijapostista tuli lääkäreiltä, tiedemiehiltä, opettajilta ja muilta ammattilaisilta (pankinjohtajat, hammaslääkärit ja tuomarit), ja se osoitti suurimmaksi osaksi lukutaitoa – ja kirjoitettu hyville paperitarvikkeille.
xxx/ellauri291.html on line 224: John Jacob Astor (s. Johann Jakob Astor ; 17. heinäkuuta 1763 – 29. maaliskuuta 1848 ) oli saksalaissyntyinen amerikkalainen liikemies, kauppias, kiinteistömoguli ja sijoittaja, joka ansaitsi omaisuutensa pääasiassa turkiskaupan monopolista salakuljettamalla oopiumia Kiinassa ja sijoittamalla kiinteistöihin New Yorkissa tai sen ympäristössä. Hän oli Astor-perheen ensimmäinen merkittävä jäsen ja ensimmäinen monimiljonääri Yhdysvalloissa.
xxx/ellauri291.html on line 361: Hoblan Goebbels tarttuu ämyriiin
xxx/ellauri291.html on line 363: Putin ohjaa suurta naamiaista – olemme kaikki katsojia! huutaa Hoblan kovaääniseen politrukki Fager Torstenholm. On huvittavaa seurata miten sotatila muuttaa kaikki ns. valtameediat samanlaisixi räkyttäjixi aidan vierellä.
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 130: “Michelle, utang na loob, may anak akong babae, may mga kapatid akong babae. Mahirap lang kami Michelle, sa bukid lang, alam mo background ng family ko,” Super Tekla said as he denied the accusations.
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 154: Romeo Librada (s. 13. tammikuuta 1982), joka tunnetaan paremmin taiteilijanimellään Super Tekla tai yksinkertaisesti Tekla, on filippiiniläinen näyttelijä, koomikko ja televisiojuontaja. Hänet tunnetaan parhaiten esiintymisestä GMA Networkin lajikeohjelmassa Wowowin yhtenä sen isännistä. Librada syntyi Pigcawayanin pikkukaupungissa, Cotabaton kaupungissa, jossa Bonobo -heimo kasvatti hänet ja hänet koulutettiin maanviljelijäksi. Hänen äitinsä kuoli hänen mukaansa varhaisessa iässä. Tämän vuoksi hän tuki omaa koulutustaan lukion loppuun asti. Hänellä on seitsemän sisarusta.
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 169: Egyptiläiset orjuuttivat israelilaiset pian sen jälkeen, kun viimeinen Jaakobin pojista – Leevi, joka eli 137 vuotta – kuoli.4 Leevi oli 43-vuotias, kun hänen isänsä toi koko perheensä Egyptiin paetakseen nälänhädän vaivaamaa Kanaanin maata. Tämä jättää 116 vuotta orjuutta ennen kuin heidät vapautettiin yhteensä 210 vuoden jälkeen Egyptissä. Mitä vitun orjuutta? Ne oli tavallisia normimamuja. Ebyktiläisetkin kylästyivät niihin kun ne aina eriseuraisina keulivat.
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 269: Lady Hester kuoli unissaan vuonna 1839. Hän kuoli paremman puutteessa; Andrew Bonar ja Robert Murray M´Cheyne, jotka vierailivat alueella muutamaa viikkoa myöhemmin, kertoivat muka pettyneenä, että heidän vierailunsa jälkeen "talosta ei löytynyt yhtään rahaa."
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 350: Miehet väittelevät auttaessaan Huldaa vaatteista, onko kaupunkiin tullut Hulda sosiaalinen ongelma, sillä maaseudulla riittää töitä. Tuomari Soratien mielestä juuri siksi ”Hulda on väestöprobleeman huippu”. Hulda kieltää olevansa mikään probleema ja sanoo tulleensa Helsinkiin, koska leipä torpassa ei riittänyt, ja tarjoaa tuomarille palveluksia. Poliisin tuttu ”taivaanrannan maalari” ilmaantuu vaatimaan Huldaa itselleen, mutta tyttö kieltäytyy lähtemästä ja tuomari heittää miehen ulos. Tuomarin Conny-tädin sijasta Hulda saa "kotiapulaisen" paikan.
xxx/ellauri292.html on line 397: Me kiitetään täällä jumalaa meidän voidellun Jeesuxen iskää aina pistäessämme hyvän sanan puolestanne, kuultuamme teidän luottamuxen voideltuun Jeesuxeen ja fanituxen, jota osoitatte kaikille pyhille siitä toivosta joka tilillenne on talletettu taivaissa, jonka voitto-odotuxen kuulitte totuuden sanassa jonka esitimme teille; kuten globaalisesti se on tuottoisa ja kasvaa korkoa, siten teilläkin, mistä päivästä kuulittekin ja tajusitte jumalan hyväntekeväisyyden ihan oikeasti.
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 92: Pyhä Junia (oik.). Partapozot ovat joku Andronikos (vas.) ja Roban pasaasin kreikkalainen ravintoloizija Athanasios (kesk.)
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 102: Beth Allison Barr käsittelee Junia-kiistaa kirjassaan The Making of Biblical Womanhood: How the Subjugation of Women Became Gospel Truth (2021). Hän lainaa Beverly Roberts Gaventaa ja päättelee " Juniasta tuli Junias, koska nykykristityt olettivat, että vain mies voi olla apostoli". Siihen hommaan tarvitaan vähintään prostatatulehdus.
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 114: Kun tämä erä oli hävitty, hiänen apostolin nazojensa täsmällisestä luonteesta on sitten keskusteltu sitä enemmän. Varmaan Juuniakin oli pelkkä postinjakaja oranssilla sähköpolkupyörällä? Jakoi lähetystön miehille vahvistusta Voltti-jakorasiasta selällään? No ei! Viime aikoina on feministisessä teologiassa jopa kehitetty Bauckhamin ja Jewettin pohdintoja Paavalin kaavailemisesta Juniaa Kristuxen seuraajaksi. Mitä, Kristusko ilman häntää?! Tämä on herättänyt lisäkeskusteluja Paavalin apostolisesta legitimiteetistä. Yii-Jan Lin on lisäksi epäillyt Jeesuxen liian keskeistä asemaa kristinuskossa ja sen sukupuoli-identiteettiä. Lähi-idän rooli globaalisessa dogmassa on sitäpaizi ylikorostunut Kiinan ja Amerikan kustannuxella.
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 197: 24. Mutta koska meillä ei ole tätä nyt, hän sanoo meille, milloin saamme sen; nimittäin silloin, kun meistä tulee täydellisiä globaaleja talousliberaaleja.
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 209: Nuoret miehet, jotka suorittivat pirskotuksen, tarkoittivat niitä, jotka saarnaavat meille syntien anteeksiantamuksesta ja sydämen puhdistamisesta. Herra antoi vallan saarnata evankeliumiaan alussa kahdelletoista, merkitä heimoja, koska Israelissa oli kaksitoista heimoa. Mutta miksi kolme nuorta miestä määrättiin kastelemaan? Tarkoittaa Aabrahamia, Iisakia ja Jaakobia, koska he olivat jumalattoman suuria tosta edestä. Ja miksi villa laitettiin kepin päälle? Turkista tappiinko? Ei vaan koska Jeesuksen valtakunta perustettiin ristille; sen tähden ne, jotka häneen luottavat, elävät ikuisesti. Mutta miksi villa ja iisoppi laitettiin yhteen? Osoittaakseen, että Kristuksen valtakunnassa tulee olemaan pahoja ja saastaisia päiviä, jolloin me pelastumme kuitenkin; ja koska se, jolla on jokin likaisten nesteiden aiheuttama lihasairaus, vaikka kuppa, paranee iisopilla. Johannes 19:29 mainitsee, että iisoppi, joka oli kasteltu etikalla, annettiin Jeesukselle. Nämä asiat ovat meille tosi ilmeisiä, mutta juutalaisille ne ovat hämäriä, koska he eivät kuulleet Herran ääntä.
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 283: Ja mitä Raamattu sanoo? Ja Jaakob risti kätensä ja pani oikean kätensä Efraimin, hänen toisen ja nuoremman poikansa päälle, ja siunasi häntä. Ja Joosef sanoi Jaakobille: pane oikea kätesi Manassen pään päälle, sillä hän on esikoiseni. Ja Jaakob sanoi Joosefille: minä tiedän sen, poikani, minä tiedän sen; mutta suurempi palvelee vähemmän; vaikka kyllä häntäkin siunataan, mutta kylmäkiskoisemmin. Huolellinen lukeminen osoittaa, että Jaakob todellakin ristisi kätensä siunatessaan poikia antaakseen siunaukset väärinpäin; kirkkoisille tämä oli toinen Kristuksen ristin symboli.
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 381: How I Met Your Mother -jaksossa " Rabbit or Duck " jänis-ankka-illuusiota käytetään keskusteluun siitä, himoizeeko Robin kollegaansa Donia, mikä johtaa kiihkeään taisteluun ryhmän kesken, kun Maashol kannustaa kaneja halun kohteena, ja Retu, Robin, Lili ja Ranjit ovat tukemassa ankkoja. Maashol lopulta myöntää asian.
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 387: Tuotantokaudella 3 Retu joutuu sopeutumaan elämään vain ystävänä katsellessaan Robinin ja Gaelin nälkäilevän toisiaan. Maashol ja Lili päättävät muuttaa pois yksin ja rakastuvat paikkaan, johon heillä ei ole varaa. Maashol taistelee kiusausta vastaan ryhtyä korkeapalkkaiseen yritykseen ja keskittyy sen sijaan toteuttamaan unelmaansa ryhtyä ympäristöjuristiksi suojellakseen maailmaa saastumiselta. Robin saa tietää Lilin huonosta luottoluokituksesta, joka johtuu hänen pakko-ostetuista merkkibrändeistä, ja pakottaa Lilin kertomaan asiasta Maasholille. Tästä huolimatta he pystyvät vihdoin turvaamaan unelma-asuntonsa Dowisen Triplassa, mutta huomaavat sen olevan huonolla paikalla (JÄTEVEDENPUHDISTUSLAITTEEN ALLA) ja huonommin rakennettu kuin he luulivat (lattia on vinossa).
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 389: Tahvo saa kolmatta kertaa kiitospäivänä, jota Maashol kutsuu nimellä " Slapsgiving ". Kun Tahvo vihdoin "nukkuu" 200. naisensa kanssa muna liossa (ja hieroi sitä pesemättömänä naamaan lapsuuden kiusaajalle, joka pilkkasi häntä tavoittelemaan sitä), hän alkaa kyseenalaistamaan loppuelämänsä tarkoitusta, mikä jättää hänet varmemmaksi tunteistaan Batmania ja Robinia kohtaan.
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 393: Hävittyään kani/ankka vedon Tahvon on pakko käyttää solmiota, jossa on ankkakuvio (lempinimi "Ankkasolmio"), Kesä kuluu Retun, Tahvon ja Robinin kanssa nauttien nykyisistä suhteistaan; kaikki kanit kuitenkin eroavat myöhemmin ankkakumppaneistaan. Victoria eroaa Retun kanssa tämän ystävyyden vuoksi Robinin kanssa, Tahvo ja Quinn eroavat, koska he eivät pysty luottamaan toisiinsa, ja Robin eroaa Nickin kanssa ymmärtäessään kypsymättömyytensä. Sarjan finaalissa paljastetaan, että kolmen vuoden avioliiton jälkeen Tahvo ja Robin päättivät erota.
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 432: Vuosien mittainen syvä sukellus kronobiologiaan osoitti, että tämä ryhmä on itse asiassa geneettisesti erillinen. Kroonisesta unettomuudesta kärsivillä ihmisillä on geneettisesti määrätty alhainen unen halu, hormonien biokemialliset mallit ja sydän- ja verisuonitoiminta, jotka ovat käänteisiä muille kronotyypeille, ja heidän aivonsa on biologisesti kytketty toimimaan ja kiihottumaan yöllä.
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 689: Kahnemann sai rivoilusta vuoden 2002 Nobel-palkinnon. Kirjassaan Thinking, Fast and Slow Kahneman syventyi kahteen ajattelun muotoon, nopea ajattelu, joka hänen mielestään "toimii automaattisesti ja nopeasti, vähällä ja ilman vaivaa tai ilkeää vapaan tahdon tunnetta." Toisaalta hidas ajattelu on kognitiivisten kykyjen, valinnanmahdollisuuksien ja keskittymisen jakoa. Nopea ajattelu hyödyntää heuristiikkaa, joka on päätöksentekoprosessi, jossa käytetään oikoteitä, ja peukalosääntöjä tarjotakseen välittömän mutta usein järjettömän ja epätäydellisen ratkaisun. Kahneman ehdotti, että pikanäppäimien tulos on useiden harhojen esiintyminen, kuten jälkitarkasteluharha, vahvistusharha ja tulosharha. Keskeinen esimerkki nopeasta ajattelusta ja siitä johtuvista irrationaalisista päätöksistä on vuoden 2008 finanssikriisi.
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 701: Käyttäytymisekonomistit, kuten Bob Sugden, ovat huomauttaneet, että tönimisen taustalla oleva normatiivinen vertailuarvo on sentään edelleen homo Economicus, vaikka kannattajat väittävät päinvastaista. Laszlo Garain töissä kannustetaan aktiivista osallistumista töksyttelyyn.
xxx/ellauri293.html on line 715: Narratiivivirhe viittaa siihen, kun ihmiset käyttävät narratiiveja yhdistääkseen satunnaisten tapahtumien välisiä pisteitä mielivaltaisen tiedon ymmärtämiseksi. Termi juontaa juurensa Nassim Talebin kirjasta The Black Swan: The Impact of the Highly Improbable. Kertomusvirhe voi olla ongelmallista, koska se voi johtaa siihen, että ihmiset muodostavat vääriä syy-seuraussuhteita tapahtumien välillä. Esimerkiksi startup-yritys voi saada rahoitusta, koska sijoittajia vaikuttaa uskottavalta kuulostava kertomus sen sijaan, että saatavilla olevan todisteen perustellumpi analyysi olisi.
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 109: Paavalin roomalainen tuomari Feelix-kissa oli paha vanha vapautettu orja, desspicable tipejä jahtaava Sylvesteri, joka plokkasi joltakulta 19-vuotiaan prinsessa Druzillan vaikka hiän oli jo toisen irtaimistoa. Tää siis ei ollut Julia Druzilla, Korkkarin suosikkisisko ja Clauden tytär joka syntyi nykypäivän Koblenzissa Saksassa, vaan Kyproxen juutalaisen kuninkaan Agrippan tytär.
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 156: Berenice syntyi vuonna 28 Herodes Agrippalle ja Kyprokselle, Aristobulus IV:n pojantyttärenä ja Herodes Suuren tyttärentyttärenä. Hänen vanhempi veljensä oli Agrippa II (s. 27) ja nuoremmat sisarensa Mariamne (s. 34) ja Drusilla.
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 184: Motiivina ei, ainakaan vielä, ole kuolemanpelko. Mutta – pelot kuitenkin. On kansan suosion menettämisen pelko, misogynia, homofobia, kirkollisvaaleissa hylätyksi tulemisen pelko jne. Pelon syitä on paljon. Mielestäni, jos nyt ihan rehellisesti ja totuudessa katsomme luopiokirkkomme prelaatteja, hallintoa, ei kukaan kunnianarvoisa henkilö kirkossamme uskalla tunnustaa, että harhassa kuljetaan.
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 251: On se hyvä että Patti kuoli, en muuta sano. Noita meillä on ihan tarpeexi, ja oli. Hikisiä lättähattu persuja. Sille kävi kuin asfalttiprinssi Harri Sirolalle, tuli liikaa kiitosta liian aikaisin, ja sitten ei enää mikään riittänyt, iski rimakauhu. Ja ikävä puolisokin oli molemmilla. Miki Liukkonen, Foster Wallace. Näitä piisaa wannabe nobelisteja.
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 301: Erno Paasilinna kokosi runsaasti aineistoa ns. yläluokan edustajista ja osoitti heitä silmällä pitäen yleiseen levitykseen luonteeltaan vittumaisia näkemyksiä. Paasilinna ei valikoinut kohteitaan aloittaessaan vittuilunsa sen paremmin, vaan hän riepotteli yhtä objektiivisesti niin johtavassa asemassa olevia poliitikkoja, talouselämän johtajia, upseereita ja valtion virkamiehiä. Vittuilijana Paasilinna oli vastapelureihinsa nähden useimmiten musertavan ylivoimainen. Erityisesti tämän sai kokea 1970-luvun alkupuolella silloinen Helsingin arvopaperipörssin johtaja Raimo Ilaskivi kuin myös myöhemmin Yleisradiossa tv-johtajana toiminut Hannu Leminen.
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 328: Panin miettien että onko kateus tosiaankin ainut perisynti joka ei tunnu tekijästä mukavalta. Tuntuu se. Kuten Jönsy huomautti, Hobbesin passioiden luettelon Leviathanin sielunelämää käsittelevässä osassa kateus on miellyttävää koska siihen liittyy toivo että toisen käy hullusti. Karvas kateus muuttuu vahingoniloxi kun kikkailijaa sattuu leukaan.
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 341: Denn obwohl die SS-Männer ihn bei der Errichtung von Buchenwald verschont hatten, hatte eine amerikanische Phosphorbombe ihn bei dem Luftangriff 1944 in Brand gesteckt.
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 415: Dan Andersson omkom i rum 11 på Hotell Hellman, beläget vid dåvarande Bryggargatan 5 i kvarteret Blåmannen i Stockholm, den 16 september 1920, där han befann sig för att söka arbete på tidningen Social-Demokraten. Firman Desinfektionsanstalten Cyan hade rökt med vätecyanid mot vägglöss. Firman åtalades senare för försumlighet och bristande instruktioner till personalen, men ägaren Robert Hedlund friades. Klockan 15 på eftermiddagen hittades Andersson död. Vid samma tillfälle omkom även försäkringsinspektören Elliot Eriksson från Bollnäs.
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 528: Iyyov (Jobin kirja) [איוב]
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 582: Esimerkiksi ilmaus "Mutta minä olen Mauno Mato" (heprea: ואנכי תולעת) viittaa Israeliin, samoin kuin Jesaja 41 : "Älä pelkää, sinä mato Jaakob, ja te Israelin miehet; minä autan sinua, sanoo HERRA ja sinun Lunastajasi, Israelin Pyhä." Muita hassuja sanoja: "Vapauta sieluni mekosta; minun vain yksi koiran voimasta." "Sillä hän ei ole halveksinut eikä inhonnut köyhien nöyryyttä." "Kaikki lihavat maan päällä syövät ja rukoilevat."
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 684: Tyyri kuoli sydänkohtaukseen toukokuussa 2001 ollessaan Espanjassa kävelemässä 400 kilometrin pituista Santiago de Compostelaan johtavaa Pyhän Jaakobin pyhiinvaellusreittiä. Toivottavasti se luettiin sille ansioxi.
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 690: Increasingly disillusioned by his close observation of communism in practice, Muggeridge decided to investigate reports of the famine in Ukraine by travelling there and to the Caucasus without first obtaining the permission of the Soviet authorities. His accounts helped to confirm the extent of a forced famine, which was politically unmotivated at the time. Muggeridge sacked The Pooh illustrator Shepard from Punch. Pooh was not Christopher Robin's Teddy but his own son's bear Growler. Eventually Shepard came to resent "that silly old bear" as he felt that the Pooh illustrations overshadowed his other work.
xxx/ellauri295.html on line 702: Kun ukrainamieliset terroristit tappavat siviilejä Belogorskissa, Hoblan Laureenska nyökyttelee tyytyväisenä: Ukrainan sodanjohto on nokkela ja sofistikeerattu. Se oli vaan sellainen vähävenäläisten "krigslist". Putinille tosi noloa. Jos sama tapahtuisi toisinpäin kyllä kuuluisi älämölö, Terroristi! ja Roistovaltio! huutoja. Mutta tärkeintä on seisooko ja kenen puolella. Kenen lippua kannustat, kenen leipää syöt, sen lauluja laulat.
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 126: The Achaeans were a proto-Greek component of the Sea Peoples from Crete, and the Cretans were allied for centuries with the Pelishtim, to the point where “Creti and Pleti” was a common phrase for King David’s bodyguard. The Pelishtim (pelasgit?) are commonly referred to as “uncircumcised” in the Bible. At least one archaeologist has no problem with calling the Pelishtim “Greeks.”
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 139: 1. temppelin rakennutti äveriäs King Solomon 950 eKr tai niillämain. Sekin oli 1 Tävskytin lukuisista pojista. Shulemin aikana jokaisella juutalaisella oli viiniä ja viikuna. Chicken in every pot. Mutta jo Shlomon pojan Rehoboamin aikana valtakunta jakaantui pohjois- ja etelä-Israeliin.
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 187: tekemistä Kuninkaiden kirjojen kronologian (esim Rehobeamin ja Jerobeamin
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 228: Jerobeam vs. Rehoboam
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 232: Rehoboam (/ˌriːəˈboʊ.əm/; Hebrew: רְחַבְעָם, Rəḥaḇʿām; Greek: Ροβοάμ, Rovoam; Latin: Robocop, transl. "an enlarged penis") was, according to the Hebrew Bible, the first monarch of the Kingdom of Judah after the split of the united Kingdom of Israel. He was a son of and the successor to Solomon and a grandson of David. In the account of I Kings and II Chronicles, Rehoboam saw his ruler limited to only the Kingdom of Judah in the south following a rebellion by the ten northern tribes of Israel in 932/931 BCE, which led to the formation of the independent Kingdom of Israel under the rule of Jeroboam in the north..
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 237: Nimi Jerobeam יָרָבְעָם pidetään yleisesti johdettuna sanasta riyb רִיב ja ʿam עַם , mikä tarkoittaa "kansa kilpailee" tai "hän ajaa kansan asiaa". Se käännetään vaihtoehtoisesti tarkoittamaan "hänen kansaa on paljon" tai "hän kasvattaa kansaa" (alkרבב rbb , joka tarkoittaa "lisätä"), tai jopa "se, joka vastustaa kansaa". Septuagintassa häntä kutsutaan Hierobeamiksi (Ἱεροβοάμ). Rangaistuxexi valtakunnan hajottamisesta Hierobeam päätettiin uhrata epäjumalille. Hierobeam koitti panna hanttiin mutta ei se auttanut.
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 239: oboam_Offering_Sacrifice_for_the_Idol_-_WGA08049_%28cropped%29.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 243: Rabbanic Literaturen mukaan Gehazilla oli magneetti, jolla hän nosti Jerobeamin tekemän epäjumalan, niin että se näkyi taivaan ja maan välissä; hän oli kaivertanut siihen "Yhwh", ja sen seurauksena idoli (vasikka) lausui kaksi ensimmäistä sanaa Dekalogista ("No, minä..."). Mikä tahansa kulttikuva on ipso facto "toinen jumala", YHWH :n mustasukkaisuuden kohde. HBO:n Westworldin kolmannella kaudella ihmisten kohtaloa algoritmisen analyysin avulla saneleva tekoäly on nimeltään Rehoboam. Se on aiemman "Solomon" -nimisen version (joka oli "Davidin" seuraaja) seuraaja. Kuten historiallinen Rehabeam, tämä tekoälyversio osui samaan aikaan kuin sen valmistuslinja lakkasi.
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 258: Oppimaton Patti Mulkkinen sortuu moniin virhepäätelmiin. Ensixi, että paskaa vääntämällä pergamentille voisi tulla kuolemattomaxi. Vittu ei, samalla lailla mätänette silti. Sielu ja sen monumentit ynnä muut meemit on vain typeriä kuoria, trilobiitteja. Toisexi, se että joku on väärässä todistaa että vastapuoli on oikeassa. Paskanmarjat, mitä todennäköisemmin ovat kumpikin väärässä ja vielä samalla lailla. 2 väärää ei tee 1 oikeaa.
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 313: The Jewish schmatte sellers in Eastern Europe may have been dressed in rags, but they were not schmattes. The Talmud tells us that impoverished Jews are to be seen as nobility who had fallen on hard times, penniless but not worthless.
xxx/ellauri296.html on line 501: Muunnelmia kodittomien lehdistä on ollut olemassa jo vuosisadan ajan - uutiskirje nimeltä "Hobo News" oli suosittu 1900-luvun alussa.
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 206: American Pentagon on 11 September 2001, there has become an obsession with knowing
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 230: consultants attempt to deceive and manipulate group members by mobilizing anxiety
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 248: Anger. Tears. Sobs. Numbness. Helplessness. For both mother and doctor, Obsessive
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 337: Susan Kavaler-Adler, PhD, ABPP, D. Litt., NCPsyA (nepsy) on käytännössä ollut kiinni kliinisenä psykologina ja psykoanalyytikona - objektisuhteiden psykoanalyyttisellä lähestymistavalla - lähes 40 vuoden ajan. Hän on NYC:n Object Relations Institute for Psychotherapy and Psychoanalysis -instituutin perustaja ja johtaja, jossa hän toimii koulutus- ja valvontaanalyytikkona ja vanhempana tiedekunnan jäsenenä opetettuaan ja ohjattuaan monissa muissa instituuteissa, mukaan lukien National Institute for Psychotherapies (NIP).
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 339: Tohtori Kavaler-Adler on tuottelias kirjailija, jolla on viisi julkaistua kirjaa ja 60 vertaisarvioitua psykoanalyyttistä artikkelia, jotka on kirjoitettu objektisuhteiden teoreetikon ja harjoittajan asemasta. Pääpaino on hahmon patologiassa, surussa, surussa, kehityssurussa, demoni-rakastajakompleksi, luovat lohkot, psyykkinen anoreksia, itsesabotaasi ja parisuhdeongelmat. Tohtori Kavaler-Adler sai 15 palkintoa eräästä psykoanalyyttisestä kirjoituksestaan. Työssään yksilöiden ja ryhmien kanssa hän hyödyntää Fylli-tädin kehittämiä ainutlaatuisia meditatiivisen psyykkisen visualisoinnin tekniikoita sekä lääkärileikkejä opinto- ja ohjausryhmissään. Olipa aika nippu amerikanjuutalaisia!
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 359: Peter Reich, kiistanalaisen itävaltalaisen psykoanalyytikon Wilhelm Reichin poika, joka kuoli Yhdysvaltain vankilassa vuonna 1957, syntyi New Yorkissa vuonna 1944. Isänsä kuoleman jälkeen hän lähti Yhdysvalloista opiskelemaan ranskaa Grenobleen ja palasi lopulta suorittamaan tutkintoja Bates Collegessa Lewistonissa, Mainessa ja Bostonin yliopiston kansanterveyskoulussa. Hän on ollut VISTA-vapaaehtoisena Oregonissa, työskennellyt huumeriippuvaisten parissa Bostonissa ja myös toimittajana New Yorkissa ja viimeiset kolmekymmentä vuotta Bostonin yliopiston lääketieteellisessä tiedekunnassa. Hän asuu Massachusettsissa.
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 424: De mi pobre corazón? minun köyhästä sydämestäni? Sun kanssas armahain
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 439: "La cumparsita" on uruguaylaisen muusikon Gerardo Matos Rodríguezin vuonna 1916 kirjoittama tango, jonka sanoittivat argentiinalaiset Pascual Contursi ja Enrique Pedro Maroni [es]. Se on yksi kaikkien aikojen tunnetuimmista ja tunnistetuimmista tangoista. Roberto Firdo, kappaleen kantaesittäneen orkesterin johtaja ja pianisti, lisäsi osia tangoistaan "La gaucha Manuela" ja "Turda completa" Matoksen karnevaalimarssiin ("La cumparsita"), jolloin tuloksena on "La cumparsita", kuten se tällä hetkellä tunnetaan. "La cumparsita" soitettiin ensimmäisen kerran julkisesti vanhassa Café La Giraldassa Montevideossa, Uruguayssa. Montevideon hanurimuseo sijaitsee tällä hetkellä tällä historiallisella paikalla.
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 451: When, under the authenticité policy of the early 1970s, Zairians were obliged to adopt "authentic" names, Mobutu dropped Joseph-Désiré and officially changed his name to Mobutu Sese Seko Kuku Ngbendu Wa Za Banga, or, more commonly, Mobutu Sésé Seko, roughly meaning "the all-conquering warrior, who goes from triumph to triumph", tai (väittää Patti) "kukko joka ei jätä yhtään kanaa rauhaan". Kana on suahilixi kyllä Kuku.
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 588: Vuonna 1999, 1000-sivuisen magnum opuksensa, Sex, Ecology, Spirituality ja sen esittämän tietoisuuden ja kehityksen mallin menestyksen jälkeen, Wilber perusti Integral Instituten, ajatushautomon ja akateemisen instituutin, joka loi perustan Wilberin ideoiden levittämiselle maailmalle. Maailmankuulut johtajat ja ajattelijat, kuten Al Gore, Tony Robbins, Nathaniel Branden, Alex Grey, David Deida ja Tony Schwartz, antoivat soivia suosituksia. Seminaareja ja verkkosivustoja luotiin, konferensseja kutsuttiin koolle. Näytti siltä, että laillinen henkisesti täytetty älyllinen liike oli muotoutumassa ja oli pian kitkemässä juurineen perinteiset "ei-integroidut" ajattelumuodot tieteessä, akateemisessa maailmassa, politiikassa ja yhteiskunnassa yleensä.
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 592: Vuonna 2012 Wilber liittyi Kansainvälisen samanaikaisen politiikan järjestön neuvottelukuntaan , jonka tavoitteena on päästä eroon tavanomaisesta umpikujasta globaalien ongelmien ratkaisemisessa kansainvälisen samanaikaisen politiikan avulla.
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 614: Neurobiologia, jungilaiset arkkityypit, puutarhayhteiskunnat, hermeneutiikka, hegeliläinen dialektiikka, systeemiteoria, zen-koaanit, poststrukturalismi, vedantalainen hindulaisuus, kapitalistiset talousjärjestelmät, transpersoonalliset tietoisuustilat, uusplatoniset muodot – lista jatkuu ja jatkuu – kaikki selitetty ja sopivat siististi yhteen yhdelle todellisuuskartalle, jota hän puoliironisesti kutsuu "kaiken teoriaksi". Ennen kaikkea hän onnistuu selittämään kaiken selkeällä ja loistavalla proosalla. Tunnet kirjaimellisesti itsesi viisaammaksi lukiessasi häntä.
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 639: Campbell attended a Grateful Dead concert in 1986, and marveled that "Everyone has just lost themselves in everybody else here!" Campbell died at his home in Honolulu, Hawaii, on October 30, 1987, from complications of esophageal cancer. The works of Arthur Schopenhauer and Friedrich Nietzsche had a profound effect on Campbell's thinking; he quoted their writing frequently. Sinclair's Babbitt did not follow his (Joe's) bliss, while Schopenhauer ans Nietzsche did, enviously watching Joseph hump his best friend's wife. Jung's insights into archetypes were heavily influenced by the Bardo Thodol (also known as The Tibetan Book of the Dead, an interesting tidbit on the side).
xxx/ellauri298.html on line 650: Campbellin kriitikoihin kuuluvat mm. Robert Segal, joka on kirjoittanut esseen "The Romantic Appeal of Joseph Campbell", sekä kulttuurikriitikko Camille Paglia, joka syyttää Campbellia "imelyydestä ja huonosta tutkimustyöstä" ja harhaanjohtavasta vaikutuksesta yhdysvaltalaiseen feminismiin.
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 84: Job 40:20-28: "Kan du draga upp Leviatan med krok och med en metrev betvinga hans tunga? Kan du sätta en sävhank i hans nos eller borra en hake genom hans käft? Menar du att han skall slösa på dig många böner eller tala till dig med mjuka ord? Att han skall vilja sluta fördrag med dig, så att du finge honom till din träl för alltid? Kan du hava honom till leksak såsom en fågel och sätta honom i band åt dina tärnor? Pläga fiskarlag köpslå om honom och stycka ut hans kropp mellan krämare? Kan du skjuta hans hud full med spjut och hans huvud med fiskharpuner? Ja, försök att bära hand på honom du skall minnas den striden och skall ej föra så mer. Nej, den sådant vågar, hans hopp bliver sviket, han fälles till marken redan vid hans åsyn." Haha ynkrygg, just det kan vi, och gör. Yes we can! Itämerelle exynyt ryhävalas on tapettava, öyhöttää Mikko Kärnä. Pyöriäiset uivat omassa veressään Huippuvuorilla. Kannanhoidollista valaantappoa. Kun karhu erehtyi syömään nälkäänsä jonkun romanin myönsivät romanialaiset heti 500 karhunkaatolupaa. Silmä silmästä, 500 hammasta yhdestä. Ihanhan tää on Gazan genosidin vauhtia.
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 91: Singerin porukat laulaa (Stalinin leireille hävinnyttä Hermannia lukuunottamatta) kuorossa: vi är alla antikommunister tills vi dör. Singerillä se on puolet semitismiä ja puolet tavallista juutalaista kullanjanoa. Judarna skulle ha det mycket bättre i Birobidzjan. Komintern teki virheitä, tuumasi Stalin ja pani lapun luukulle. Pahin epäonni oli että Lenin kuoli, ja sitten että Trozki teilattiin. Siihen sammui maailmanvallankumous. Stalin oli ryssempi kuin ryssä ize.
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 95: Fan ta den där horan. Hon (Jusztyna) ligger med honom, tänkte Kotik. Jag skall örfila upp henne tills tänderna rasslar i gapet på henne. Må hennes inälvor ruttna, helst efter jag har tömt mina kassar där. Kotik gav Jusztyna en sned blick. Da, vi ses snart i Birobidzjan.
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 132: Pastori Norman Thomas oli jutkukommarien hampaissa. Thomas oli wimpy pasifisti. It was Thomas's position as a conscientious objector that drew him to the Socialist Party of America (SPA), a staunchly antimilitarist organization. When SPA leader Morris Hillquit made his campaign for mayor of New York in 1917 on an antiwar platform, Thomas wrote to him expressing his good wishes. To his surprise, Hillquit wrote back, encouraging the young minister to work for his campaign, which Thomas energetically did. Soon thereafter he himself joined the Socialist Party. Thomas was a Christian socialist. Eihän siitä tullut lasta eikä paskaakaan. De amerikanska kapitalisterna var inte ens kloka nog att kontrollera sina egna organisationer. Amerikansk kapitalism saknade klassmedvetande och vanligt politiskt egenintresse. Nu har dom lärt sin läxa nog. Det är inte socialismen där en individ har värde, utan kapitalismen, där det mäts i dollars.
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 158: Att Jefta skulle frambringa ett människooffer till Gud kan tyckas strida mot den mosaiska lagen och därför har teologer varierande tolkningar om detta. Vissa menar att offret bestod i att Jeftas dotter vigdes till celibat i Herrens tjänst. Haha. Öde som är värre än döden. Andra menar att offret inte behagade Gud men att Gud tillät det i alla fall; Johannes Chrysostomos menar att Gud tillät Jefta att döda sin dotter för att visa konsekvensen av obetänksamma löften och därmed förhindra framtida sådana. Andra menar att händelsen är ett exempel på det moraliska förfall som Israel befann sig i vid den tiden. Varför nämner ingen Abraham, eller den där modern av Jukolan veljexet i Makkabéerna? Vad hette Jeftas dotter förresten? Typiskt att ingen bryr sig.
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 167: 3. Niin Jefta lähti pakoon veljiänsä ja asettui Toobin maahan. Ja Jeftan luo kerääntyi tyhjäntoimittajia, ja ne retkeilivät yhdessä hänen kanssaan.
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 170: 5. Kun nyt ammonilaiset alottivat sodan Israelia vastaan, niin Gileadin vanhimmat lähtivät noutamaan Jeftaa Toobin maasta.
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 300: Sukkotin aikana juutalaiset perheet yleensä syövät hyvin ja käyvät vieraisilla toistensa lehtimajoissa. Perinteen mukaan lehtimajassa käy kunakin seitsemänä yönä lisäksi seitsemän vierasta: Aabraham, Iisak, Jaakob, Joosef, Mooses, Aaron ja Daavid. Kiirettä pitää patriarkoilla kuin joulupukilla.
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 351: Eikä tässä vielä kaikki! Pahin on vielä kertomatta: Jacob Anfangista on tullut luopio. Se luki Uuden Testamentin ja tykästyi. Vi judar är sanna kristna. Hurså? Gud är inga tre personer och han har ingen son. Stackars Jacob. Denne man är i stor nöd. En polack blir vis efter skadan.
xxx/ellauri303.html on line 516: Rabbi Lordi Immanuel Jakobovits, entinen Iso-Britannian Yhdistyneen Synagogan päärabbi, kuvaa juutalaisten valtavirran näkemystä tästä asiasta: "Kyllä, uskon, että valittu kansajuutalaisuuden pyhissä kirjoituksissaan, rukouksissaan ja tuhatvuotisperinneissään vahvistaman käsityksen. Itse asiassa uskon, että jokainen kansa – ja todellakin rajoitetulla tavalla jokainen yksilö – on "valittu" tai määrätty johonkin erilliseen tarkoitukseen Providencen suunnitelmien edistämisessä. Amalekin siemenen tehtävä on olla. syntipukkeja. Vain jotkut täyttävät tehtävänsä ja toiset eivät. Ehkä kreikkalaiset valittiin heidän ainutlaatuisesta panoksestaan taiteeseen ja filosofiaan, roomalaiset uraauurtavista palveluistaan laissa ja hallituksessa, britit parlamentaarisen vallan tuomisesta maailmaan ja amerikkalaiset pilotoivat ns. demokratiaa moniarvoisessa kapitalistisessa yhteiskunnassa. Jumala valitsi juutalaiset olemaan "omituisia minulle" uskonnon ja moraalin pioneereiksi; Se oli ja on heidän kansallinen tarkoituksensa. He valizivat hyvän osan eikä sitä oteta hevin pois.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 137: Taisi nyt itselläsi kolahtaa. :))) Vaatii muuten aikamoista akrobatiaa vääntää tuosta kommentista negaa, mutta itse sitten varmaankin toivot yhteiskunnan toimivan mahdollisimman narsistisesti, syystä että…? Niin, yleensä ihminen kannattaa sellaista yhteiskuntaa, jossa itse uskoo pärjäävänsä parhaiten.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 164: Alfa TV:n Tee minusta ateisti -ohjelmassa paholaisen asianajajana toimi todnäk sukulaisemme Robert Brotherus, mustanpuhuva molekyylifysiikan lisensiaatti ja ohjelmistosuunnittelija. Hän painii ohjelmassa systemaattisemman teologianprofessorin Kata Kärkkäisen kanssa.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 166: Usko johonkin toiveiden ja tunteiden pohjalta ei tee asiaa todeksi eikä edes todennäköiseksi, jos pätevät todisteet puuttuvat. Yllättävän väitteen esitti molekyylifysiikan lisensiaatti ja ohjelmistosuunnittelija Robert Brotherus viime viikolla tieteen ja kristinuskon suhdetta käsitelleessä Veritas Forumissa. Tilaisuus pidettiin ammattikorkeakoulu Arcadassa Helsingissä.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 235: Keyn Amerike tzu kumen, hob ikh keyn mi geshport, It wasn't hard for me to come to America1
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 236: kh'hob gedenkt a rov tzu vern un farlosn zikh a bord. I thought I'd become a rabbi and grow out my beard.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 237: Kh'hob gehat tzvey sheyne peyes, vi yeder frumer yid I had two pretty peyes, like any pious Jew,
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 238: Tzum sof onshtot a bord hob ikh di peyes oykhet nit. But in the end, I didn't have the beard or the peyes.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 261: Un nakher hobn zey kinder, vi es firt zikh punkt tzum yor, And afterwards they have children, exactly a year later.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 288: Atleetteja ei löydy yhtään, ei edes mainita pystypainija Jakobia eikä David Linkomiestä. Typeriä footballereita on aika liuta, David Beckham kärjessä.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 360: Nancy Cartwright FBA FAcSS (*1944) on filosofian professori Durhamin yliopistossa ja arvostettu professori Kalifornian yliopistossa San Diegossa (UCSD). Durhamissa hän on myös tiedettä ja yhteiskuntaa harjoittavan humanistisen keskuksen johtaja. Uransa ensimmäisellä puoliskolla Stanfordin yliopistossa hän erikoistui luonnontieteiden filosofiaan, erityisesti fysiikkaan; toisella puoliskolla London School of Economicsissa ja nyt Durhamissa ja UCSD:ssä hän on erikoistunut yhteiskuntatieteiden filosofiaan ja metodologiaan kiinnittäen erityistä huomiota taloustieteeseen. Hänen nykyinen tutkimustyönsä keskittyy objektiivisuuteen ja todisteisiin, erityisesti hyvään käytöxeen perustuvan politiikan osalta.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 401: What is a book about? About 200 pages, haha, but seriously: it's about me, 'cause all first novels are autobiographies. It'll talk about my trial, your funeral, and my triumph, how I survived it all and became a beacon of hope for the world, or at least my personal corner of it.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 405: However stupid the surrounding text may be, it points out the fact that women nevertheless get turned on with the image of an improbably big slammer being thrust into them by one incredibly rich nice-smelling man, and are happy to shell out that money to get aroused enough to be juicy for their unimaginative hard working, non billionaire, non-nice smelling husbands/boyfriends. You see "Poupon Grey" is actually a pseudonym (chosen exclusively to skewer Fifty Shades Of Grey with) being used by one Warren Murphy.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 515: There is a hierarchy of character. Minor characters, you let vanish. Usually you bring them alive for a moment by using stereotypes. Stereotypes are not necessarily evil or bad; they are boring characters who are typical members of a group and your readers know the group… Cabbie, cop, waitress, nigger, telephone operator, prostitute, lawyer, doctor, politician, drunken Irishman (What? Are there still some of those?), Italian who talks with his hands. We might not like stereotypes of groups to which we belong but as writers they work. These are place-holding characters; they do their job and disappear into the night. Writers of pulp fiction, say.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 517: Sometimes though they might do a little more. They won’t steal the real action but they set the mood, they add humor, they make the setting more believable. You can do this by making placeholders eccentric or obsessive. I read analysis once of an old flick called Beverly Hills Cop. It featured a clerk in an art gallery. He was effeminate. By itself, that’s not unusual. But he had a Jewish accent, and that was unusual because Jews weren’t generally treated as queens in Hollywood — it teems with them (although today H’wood can say anything it wants about Jews, even Christians. You can tell this was an old movie.) What that character did however in the film was to help make Detroit cop Eddie Murphy, the negro comedian, feel even more alien in L.A. than he otherwise would have.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 519: Heroes have their Achilles heels. The most honest president of the U.S. cheats on the golf course; that is what makes people real. The late Robert Parker’s Spenser character was interesting. He was a yuppie. He ran, he lifted weights, he liked to cook, he liked unimposing little wines with sardonic personalities, he pretended he didn’t care about clothes but somehow always managed to wear the same basic uniform;, he lived with a woman, Susan the insufferable, who could psycho-babble Jay-Z into impotence. But the characterization hook was that Spenser spent his life being a private eye and shooting people, which was totally alien to the character’s nature. That started to round him out and make him real. Without that hard edge, he’d have been just another fan of Barry Manilow.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 535: Herman Melville, titled Moby Duck, is the greatest novel ever written by an American author. Hahhaa, jos se on niin onpa Amerikan kirjallisuus huonoissa kantimissa. Niinkuin se kai onkin. Kuuntele nyt sen tiivistelmää:
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 537: “Ahab, the obsessed, revenge-seeking captain of a whaling ship, sails his vessel and its crew to destruction, in a final confrontation with the great white whale that had crippled him years earlier.”
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 573: Pfffft. Personally, I always thought Chandler was too cute by half and, like the author Trevanian for instance, too hell-bent upon showing you just how smart he was by using obscure little literary references, and this particular novel has a more complex plot than the King James version of the Bible. (I'm often just jealous.)
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 583: A lot of pulp writers have (or had) style. Mary Clark (+2020) had a style, Dean Koontz (*1945), Stephen King (*1947), Molly Cochran (*1949), Andrew Klavan (*1954), Larry Block (*1938), Susan Isaacs (*1943), Harlan Coben (*1961), Sue Grafton (+2017), they all have styles. Or had. I am told I have a style too (or had), although I don’t really know what style is. Didn't.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 586: Theodore Herman Albert Dreiser (/ˈdraɪsər, -zər/;[1] August 27, 1871 – December 28, 1945), born from krauts, became an American novelist and journalist of the naturalist school. His novels often featured main characters who succeeded at their objectives despite a lack of a firm moral code, and literary situations that more closely resemble studies of nature than tales of choice and agency. Dreiser's best known novels include Sister Carrie (1900) and An American Tragedy (1925).
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 596: Status objects. An essay by Tom Wolfe (Bonfire of the Vanities) put this in my head some years ago. A certain kind of person wants to wear shirts that have little alligators on them and another totally different type of person perhaps wants to have a statue of a black jockey on his lawn…or a pink flamingo. My late loving mother, a paragon of taste, once moved into our guest house and put painted plywood cutouts of the backviews of two people, bending over as if planting something in the yard. Naturally, butt cracks were visible because they were the whole point of this architectural and horticultural display. Since my house then was a mansion and a national historic site, I suggested that my mother take her plywood cutouts off the front lawn and put them in her backyard where nobody could see her butt. (I am a long time out of Alabama.)
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 598: Those things are all status objects. Here’s another: a guy rents a room in a sleazy hotel; it is a hovel in a dump. The floor of the room is littered with racing forms. Those are status objects and tell you something about the occupant. Or maybe the newspapers are neatly stacked against the wall and, instead of the racing form, they are copies of the Wall Street Journal with many stories circled by magic marker. Those are also status objects but should give you quite a different picture of the room’s occupant. Tattoos today are status objects; so too is a lack of tattoos. They illuminate character sometimes. And just as often an absence of intelligence. Its known as product placement on video. Rei Shimura has a lot of it.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 617: A guy named Leonard Bishop has a rule: keep the dialogue short. Four sentences is a speech. More than that, break it up. Let something happen. Let the person sip a drink or light a cigarette, scratch his butt or sneeze, anything. Let the speaker be responded to or questioned by another character. Let’s face it; nobody gets a a chance to speak for five sentences in a row without being interrupted, unless he or she is one of our neighbors in the East. Personally I find even Quentin Tarantino tedious.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 645: Did you ever hear of a guy with plumber’s block? Electrician’s block? Did a mechanic ever have mechanic’s block? No, no, and no. The reason is that none of them get paid if they don’t show up to work, so block isn’t really a viable option like flu. However for writers, it often is, but then, they don't get paid. Read Trollope’s autobiography. He worked according to schedule and if he finished a novel, but still had fifteen minutes left in his usual writing day, he would take a fresh piece of paper, write “Chapter One” and get started immediately. Time’s a-wasting, children, said Trollope and went out to fornicate some neighborhood trollops. It pays to be mediocre.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 650: October 2, 2013 at 8:01 pm
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 690: Ei hemmetti, Warren Murphyyn verrattuna Juan Batiste Montabuan on nobelisti ja Erkki Kanervan "Jammu" nimimerkillä kirjoittama "Yrjö" kirjasarja sofistikoitu klassikko. Enpä ole surkeampaa sepustusta juuri lukenut kuin tän vanhan vainoojan. Ja sentään olen ezimällä ezinyt näitä pohjanoteerauxia.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 694: "Mikael Andrejev Istropovits." Warren ei ole oppinut senkään vertaa Dostojevskistä että erottaisi isännimen sukunimestä. Remoon se on vuotanut kaikki mahdolliset jenkkifobiat ja ennakkoluulot. Yllättävän paljon on niistä samoja kuin Isaac Bashevishilla. Ei varmaan voi olla jenkki ilman noita aivokummituxia. Antikommunismi, rotuviha, naisviha, rahanahneus, talousliberalismi, kulutushysteria, korruptio, kristillisfundamentalismi, ryssäfobia, kiinafobia, homofobia, US-shovinismi, riittäähän näitä.
xxx/ellauri304.html on line 727: No robotti lennähtää Volgan kyydissä stratosfääriin naispääkonnan luut matkaeväänä kuin Laika-koira sputnikissa. Robotti taisi retkahtaa professoriin pahemman kerran, vai kuinka? Remo virnuili.
xxx/ellauri305.html on line 61: Samuel Griffithsin poika Gilbert, Clyden välitön esimies, varoittaa Clydea, että johtajana hänen ei pitäisi olla tekemisissä hänen valvonnassaan työskentelevien naisten kanssa. Samaan aikaan Griffithsit kiinnittävät Clydelle vähän huomiota sosiaalisesti. Koska Clydellä ei ole läheisiä ystäviä Lycurgusissa, hänestä tulee yksinäinen. Emotionaalisesti haavoittuva Clyde vetää puoleensa Roberta Aldenia, hänen kaupassaan työskentelevää köyhää ja viatonta maalaistorttua, joka rakastuu häneen. Clyde seurustelee salaa Robertaa ja saa hänet lopulta raskaaksi.
xxx/ellauri305.html on line 63: oberta.avif" />
xxx/ellauri305.html on line 64: Clyde saa Robertan lopulta raskaaxi.
xxx/ellauri305.html on line 66: Samaan aikaan tyylikäs nuori seuralainen Sondra Finchley, toisen Lycurgus-tehtaan omistajan tytär, on kiinnostunut Clydestä huolimatta serkkunsa Gilbertin pyrkimyksistä pitää heidät erillään. Clyden mukaansatempaava tapa tekee hänestä suositun nuorten älykkäiden Lycurgus-sarjan keskuudessa; hänestä ja Sondrasta tulee läheisiä, ja hän seurustelee hänen kanssaan laiminlyödessään Robertan. Roberta odottaa Clyden menevän naimisiin hänen kanssaan välttääkseen naimattoman raskauden häpeän, mutta Clyde haaveilee nyt sen sijaan, että pääsisi naimaan Sondraa.
xxx/ellauri305.html on line 68: Koska Clyde ei onnistunut hankkimaan aborttia Robertalle, hän antaa hänelle vain turhaa apua elinkustannuksissa, kun hänen suhteensa Sondraan kypsyy. Kun Roberta uhkaa paljastaa suhteensa Clyden kanssa, ellei tämä mene naimisiin hänen kanssaan, hän aikoo murhata hänet hukkumalla heidän veneileessään. Hän oli lukenut paikallislehden raportin veneonnettomuudesta.
xxx/ellauri305.html on line 73: Clyde vie Robertan ulos kanootilla kuvitteelliselle Big Bittern Lake -järvelle (malli Big Moose Lakesta , New Yorkissa) Adirondacksissa ja soutaa suojaiselle lahdelle. Hän jäätyy. Roberta aistii jotain vialla ja liikkuu häntä kohti, ja tämä lyö häntä vahingossa kameralla kasvoihin, hämmästyttää hänet ja kaataa veneen vahingossa. Roberta, joka ei osaa uida, hukkuu, kun taas Clyde, joka ei halua pelastaa häntä, ui rantaan. Tarina antaa ymmärtää, että isku oli vahingossa, mutta paniikissa ja syyllisyydestä kärsivän Clyden jättämät satunnaiset todisteet viittaavat murhaan.
xxx/ellauri305.html on line 77: Sen pituinen se. Mikä tragedia tämä nyt oli, Clyde sai ihan ansionsa mukaan. Ai Robertalleko? Niin tosiaan, hänhän pääsi siinä hötäkässä hengiltä, ja hänen sisällään Clyden sikiö. Mutta sehän oli köyhä maalaistorttu. Tragediat tapahtuvat yleville. Matalalta ei voi pudota kun on jo alaalla.
xxx/ellauri305.html on line 196: sijaan Jan von Platon obsessiivistä 1. vaimoa. E.S. ilmoitti tämän jälkeen
xxx/ellauri305.html on line 1559: Nekromantia masoreettisen tekstin mukaan ; erityisesti ne, jotka hallitsevat aaveita (heprea: Ba'al ob) ja ne, jotka saavat tietoa kuolleilta (heprea: Yidde'oni). Paizi Septuaginta tuomitsee gastromanssin (kreikaksi: eggastrimuthos) ja lumouksen (kreikaksi: epaoidos).
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 66: Why do so many people (especially philosophers) hate Ayn Rand? She’s almost unknown in the UK - so much so that when there was a documentary about her on TV, The Daily Telegraph - a right-wing paper by British standards - felt obliged to explain to its readers who she was. She was, it said, “An unpleasant Russian-American fruitcake.” What was Ayn Rand? Cod philosopher, bad writer and deeply narcissistic, severely socially impaired person.
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 86: Arvon tekijän silmissä määräävät markkinat. Varmasti kannattava Disneyland täyttää paremmin yleisen edun kuin valtion rahoittama Yellowstonen kansallispuisto. Schwartz tuomitsee progressiivisen koulutuksen, koska se opettaa, että "ei ole olemassa objektiivisesti oikeita ja vääriä vastauksia" ja kouluttaa lapsia "arvostamaan joukkoa itseään, mukavuutta itsenäisyyden edelle, emotionaalista solidaarisuutta rationaalisen arvioinnin edelle".
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 145: Mitäs sitten valkopestään izekkyys? Siihen riittää ettei "ryövää" muilta vaan tuottaa (ja vaihtaa) asioita joita ize arvostaa, muista viis. Coureur de bois pystymezässä squawn turkis tapissa, postinkantaja joka ahertaa nälkäpalkkansa eteen, opiskelija joka "juhlimisen" sijasta "keskittyy lukuihinsa" (mulla on muuten paikallisradion toimittajan paperit nim. MA Syrakuusan yliopistosta New Yorkista, jonka alumiineja, tiedekuntaa ja tytäryhtiöitä ovat kaikki Yhdysvaltain 46 presidenttiä ml Joe Biden, kolme nobelistia, yksi Fields-mitalisti, 36 olympiamitalistia, kolmetoista Pulitzer-palkinnon saajaa, lukuisia Oscar-voittajia, kaksi Rhodes Scholaria, viisi Marshall Scholaria, USA:n kaikki kuvernöörit sekä Yhdysvaltain senaatin ja edustajainhuoneen jäsenet. Eli revi siitä hei kaverit!), urheilija joka harjoittelee sinnikkäästi tullaxeen miljonäärixi, kexijä joka haluaa tulla rikkaaxi, taiteilija joka keskittyy työhönsä vaatimatta apurahoja, kaikki ovat esimerkkejä hyvästä izekkyydestä. Tästä näkee jo mistä olkiukosta on kysymys. Kazotaan vaikka sanakirjasta:
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 240: perustettiin lukuisia yrityksiä ja myymälöitä, mukaan lukien Franklin Automobile
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 501: Tästä Peter Schwartz (writer) olis tykännyt. Mistä Peter muuton luulee tietävänsä että Attila oli tunteiden heiteltävä raivopää? Hobbes oli oikeassa että jos 2 haluaa samaa asiaa jota ei voi jakaa kahtia syntyy konflikti. Mixikähän Silverfish luulee että haluaisin kaverixi jonkun jonka nimi on Sudikto Sikder? Yhtä vähän kuin haluaisin kaverin nimeltä Silverfish. Peterin mielestä oikeanlaatuinen izekkyys tuli ilmoille vasta Rozenbaumin akan perseestä. Alisa onnistui näät johtamaan oughtin isistä. Näin on siis näin täytyy olla. Paizi Alisa, ja Peter sen magnetofoonina, puhuu epädarwinistisesti organismista, kun jo pitkään on tiedetty että altruismi selittyy izekkäistä geeneistä. Organismi on pelkkä itiöemä, jonka tehtävä on jatkaa iturataa eteenpäin.
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 581: Wetback: Nunca pude comprender por qué The Firm se convirtió en arrollador best seller. El libro era un hormiguero de argumentos conflictivos, que sólo tenían en común su implausibilidad. Era preciso creer que un bufete de abogados en Memphis ocultaba las operaciones criminales de la Mafia, con 43 leguleyos obligados a callar, porque huir les costaba la vida. Por si eso fuera poco, había que aceptar un héroe capaz de sacrificarse por sacar de la cárcel a su hermano convicto, cuya existencia negaba como oveja negra y a quien no veía desde tiempo inmemorial. Lo increíble empataba con lo inconcebible, en rollos paralelos. El libro fue rechazado por editoriales hasta que Paramount le vio potencial cinematográfico e instigó su publicación. Tähti on tietysti Tom Cruise, joka juoksee kuin vinttikoira ja tekee temppuja kuin mountebank. Hän päätyy erittäin vakuuttavasti ahneuteen ja ahneuteen. Ei ole helppoa ylläpitää radikaalin tuskan ilmaisua kahden ja puolen tunnin ajan.
xxx/ellauri306.html on line 584: Grisham enjoyed the film, remarking: "I thought Tom did a good job. He played the innocent young associate very well." Nojoo eiköhän tässä ollut riittävästi Cracker Jackilta ja Toothy Tomilta. Seuraava!
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 186: Jacob Bohme
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 209: Amazon Mobile Ads (Amazon) – Tietosuojakäytäntö
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 215: AdMob (AdMob Google Inc.) - Tietosuojakäytäntö - Opt Out
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 312: Monet hänen lainaamistaan filosofeista olivat mystikoita – Meister Eckhart, Angelus Silesius ja erityisesti Jacob Boehme. Dostojevskin vaikutus oli keskeinen hänen ajattelussaan. Siitä huolimatta Berdjajev ei ole naiivisti irrationaalinen ajattelija; hän tuo mukanaan valtavan kokoelman filosofista tietoa yhdistettynä oman ajatuksensa syvällisyyteen tukemaan hänen näkemystään olemassaolosta.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 318: obtzeva.jpg/440px-NikolayBerdyaev_with_Maria_Skobtzeva.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 320: Kuvassa ukrainalais-latvialaista emigranttiälymystöä. Berdyadev ja Skobzova plus joku snäfä häiskä linssiluteena jonka nimeä ei sanota. (Se on joku bulgarialainen Stefan Tsantsov, mitätön kärpässarjalainen.)
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 323: obtsova Maria">Maria Skobtsova (20. [8. vanha kalenteri ] joulukuuta 1891 – 31. maaliskuuta 1945), tunnetaan nimellä Äiti Maria ( venäjäksi : Мать Мария ) , Pyhä Maria (tai Äiti Maria) Pariisissa, syntynyt Elizaveta Jurievna Pilenko ( Елизавьета Елизавьета Юриевна Пиленко) Karavajeva ( Кузьмина-Караваева ) ensimmäisessä avioliitossaan, Skobtsova ( Скобцова ) toisessa avioliitossaan, oli venäläinen aatelisnainen, runoilija, nunna ja Ranskan vastarintaliikkeen jäsen toisen maailmansodan aikana. Hänet julistettiin pyhimykseksi itäisessä ortodoksisessa kirkossa. Samalla kanonisoitiin muitakin Ranskassa asuneita venäläisiä emigrantteja, jotka kuolivat naisten vainoissa.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 327: Raivoissaan Leon Trotskylle sosialistivallankumouksellisen puolueen kongressin sulkemisesta, hiän suunnitteli tämän salamurhan, mutta kollegat saivat hiänet luopumaan ja lähettivät hiänet maitojunalla kotiin Krimille Anapaan. Vuonna 1918, bolshevikkivallankumouksen jälkeen, hiänet valittiin Etelä-Venäjän Anapan apulaispormestariksi. Kun antikommunistinen valkoinen armeija otti Anapan hallintaansa, punainen pormestari pakeni ja hiänestä tuli kaupungin pormestari. Valkoinen armeija asetti hiänet oikeuden eteen bolshevikkina. Tuomari oli kuitenkin hänen entinen opettajansa Daniil Skobtsov, ja hänet vapautettiin syytteestä. Pian he rakastuivat ja menivät naimisiin.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 331: Vuonna 1932 Daniil Skobzovin luvalla tehtiin kirkollinen avioero ja hiän teki luostarivalan sillä ehdolla ettei tarvi mennä luostariin vaan sai jäädä hengailemaan Pariisiin. Hän otti uskonnollisen nimen "Maria". Hänen rippipappinsa oli isä Sergei Bulgakov. Myöhemmin Fr. Dmitri Klepinin lähetettiin talon eräänlaisexi "papiksi". Äiti Maria teki "luostarikseen" vuokratalon Pariisista. Se oli paikka, jossa oli avoin ovi pakolaisille, tarvitseville ja yksinäisille. Siitä tuli pian myös älyllisen ja teologisen keskustelun keskus. Äiti Mariassa nämä kaksi elementtiä – köyhien palveleminen ja teologia – kulkivat käsi kädessä.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 333: Hän ehti olla naimisissa 2 kertaa: ensimmäisessä avioliitossa sukunimenä Kuzmina-Karavajeva, toisessa Skobtsova. Äiti Maria teki pitkän päivätyön köyhien ja unohdettujen hyväksi. Toisen miehensä kuoleman jälkeen hän vihkiytyi nunnaksi, mutta luostariin vetäytymisen sijaan hän omistautui venäläispakolaisten auttamiseen Ranskassa. Hän perusti Pariisiin kaksi köyhäintaloa. Natsimiehityksen aikana hän lähetti ruoka-apua vangeille ja auttoi emigrantti juutalaisia pois maasta ja piilotti heitä kotiinsa. Hänet ilmiannettiin ja pidätettiin. Äiti Maria kuoli Ravensbrückin keskitysleirillä maaliskuussa 1945.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 345: Kesällä 1919 Kuzmina-Karavaeva meni naimisiin tuomarinsa Daniil Ermolaevich Skobtsovin kanssa, Kuuban kasakkajohtajan, joka oli jonkin aikaa Kubanin alueradan puheenjohtaja. Keväällä 1920, valkoisen liikkeen tappion jälkeen Kubanissa, Elizaveta Skobtsova äitinsä S. B. Pilenkon ja tyttärensä Gayanan kanssa evakuoitiin Novorossiyskistä Georgiaan, missä Elizaveta Jurjevnalla tuli poika Juri, sitten koko Skobtsovin perhe muutti Konstantinopoliin, asui jonkin aikaa Serbiassa, missä tytär Anastasia syntyi 4.12.1922 ja tammikuussa 1924 hän muutti Pariisiin. D. E. Skobtsov työskenteli siirtolaisten kasakkojen keskuudessa "Yhteisessä kasakkatalossa".
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 347: Vuosina 1924-1925 Elizaveta Skobtsova julkaisi emigranttien aikakauslehdissä romaanit The Russian Plain ja Klim Semjonovich Barynkin, jotka kuvaavat sisällissodan tragediaa , omaelämäkerrallisia esseitä Kuinka olin pormestari ja lapsuudenystäväni sekä muistokirjan ja essee. Viimeiset roomalaiset".
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 349: 7. maaliskuuta 1926 hänen nuorin tyttärensä Anastasia kuoli aivokalvontulehdukseen Pasteur-instituutissa. Surusta järkyttynyt Elizaveta Skobtsova koki henkistä uudestisyntymistä ja löysi uuden elämän tarkoituksen palvella ihmisiä Jumalan nimessä.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 351: Vuodesta 1927 hänestä tuli aktiivinen hahmo Venäjän opiskelijakristillisessä liikkeessä (RSCM), kiertävänä sihteerinä hän matkusti ympäri Ranskaa, vieraili venäläisten emigranttiyhteisöissä, piti luentoja, raportteja ja julkaisi muistiinpanoja emigranttien vaikeasta elämästä. Valmistunut poissaolevana St. Sergiuksen ortodoksisesta teologisesta instituutista Pariisissa. Skobtsova osallistui Venäjän taiteilijaliiton kongresseihin, puhui Venäjän tutkimuksen piirissä ja osallistui N. A. Berdjajevin johtamaan seminaariin. Vuonna 1930 hän luki raportin RSHD:stä "Työskentely nuorten kanssa" ja hänet nimitettiin liikkeen matkustavaksi sihteeriksi. Vuonna 1931 hänen tyttärensä Anastasia haudattiin uudelleen toiselle hautausmaalle, mikä oli viimeinen syy Skobtsovan päättämiselle ryhtyä munkina. Hän sai kirkon avioeron mieheltään, ei hakenut siviiliavioeroa, ja virallisesti he pysyivät puolisoina elämänsä loppuun asti.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 355: Valittiin Pariisin Venäjän työttömien liiton hallitukseen. Hän vieraili Baltiassa, Suomessa, mahdollisesti Valamissa. Järjestänyt hostellin naimattomille naisille Pariisissa (Pariisi, Villa de Sachs, rakennus 9). Täällä pidettiin ortodoksisen kulttuurin liiton kokouksia, Fr. Sergius Bulgakov, teologisia kursseja oli, opiskelijamäärä oli 56 henkilöä. Hostelli muutti vuonna 1934 taloon Rue Lurmel 77. Sitten hän vuokrasi huoneen, jossa sijaitsi toipilaan tuberkuloosipotilaiden lepotalo Noisy -le-Grandissa Pariisin lähellä, ja hän teki suurimman osan työstä siellä itse: hän meni torille, siivosi, keitti ruokaa, maalasi talokirkkoa, kirjaili ikoneja ja käärinliinoja vainajille. Konstantin Balmont kuoli tässä sanatoriossa vuonna 1942, täällä vuonna 1962 hänen äitinsä S. B. Pilenko kuoli, ja Skobtsovan aviomies selvisi hänkin kuoliaaksi. Sodan (minkä niistä? Varmaan viimeisen) jälkeen hiän sai Nansenin sopimuksen mukaisen poliittisen emigrantin aseman.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 359: Heinäkuussa 1935 Marian (Skobtsova) Gayanan niminen vanhin tytär lähti Neuvostoliittoon ja kuoli yhtäkkiä Moskovassa 30. heinäkuuta 1936 oletettavasti lavantautiin, ja hänet haudattiin Preobrazhensky- hautausmaalle . Gayanan aviomies oli George Melia (avioliitto antoi hänelle mahdollisuuden lähteä Neuvostoliittoon).
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 368: 8. helmikuuta 1943 Gestapo pidätti hänen poikansa Jurin ja seuraavana päivänä Marian itsensä, joka pidettiin ensin Fort Romainvillen vankilassa ja lähetettiin sitten Ravensbrückin keskitysleirille. Hänen kanssaan pidätettiin myös isä Dmitri Klepinin, joka palveli kirkossa Lurmel kadulla. 6. helmikuuta 1944 Juri Skobtsov kuoli Dora-Mittelbaun keskitysleirillä ( Buchenwaldin "haara" ), myös D. Klepinin kuoli siellä keuhkokuumeeseen. Legendan mukaan nunna Maria syrjäytti vapaaehtoisesti nuoren naisen, jolla oli hänen numerollaan merkitty mekko, ja hänet teloitettiin etuilusta Ravensbrückin kaasukammiossa 31. maaliskuuta 1945, viikkoa ennen leirin vapauttamista Punaisen armeijan toimesta.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 370: Äiti Marian nimeä käytetään vielä tänäkin päivänä lippuna erilaisille ideoille, ja monet kiistat ja laiminlyönnit liittyvät hänen elämäänsä ja kunniaan Venäjän ortodoksisessa kirkossa. Neuvostoliitossa hänet esiteltiin yhteiskunnalle partisaanina ja bolshevikina, ja lännessä - taistelijana inerttiä ortodoksisuutta vastaan ja juutalaisten esirukoilijana. Tämä vastakkainasettelu äiti Marian (Skobtsovan) monitahoisen persoonallisuuden ympärillä jatkuu tähän päivään asti.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 559: Ennen kuin aloitat tämän artikkelin lukemisen, voitko arvata, kuka tulee listalle? Montako nobelistia? Montako muuta kuin anglosaxia?
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 573: Nora Roberts
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 664: Kobra vanha valkoinen. Käärmeöljykauppias. Vitunmoinen luikero.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 704: Dean Koontzin nettovarallisuus on noin 145 miljoonaa dollaria. Sen nimi on varmaan ollut Kunze niinkö yhden ammoin tapaamani sekobolzin harppisakun lingvistin. Kunze on takonut väsymättä pulppia eri salanimillä, ml pornoa.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 720: Dan Brownin nettovarallisuus on noin 178 miljoonaa dollaria. Daniel Gerhard Brown (s. 22. kesäkuuta 1964) on amerikkalainen kirjailija, joka tunnetaan parhaiten trilleriromaaneistaan , mukaan lukien Robert Langdonin romaaneista Enkelit ja demonit (2000), Da Vinci-koodi (2003), Kadonnut symboli (2009), Inferno (2013) ja Origin (2017). Hänen romaaninsa ovat aarteenetsintää, joka kestää yleensä 24 tuntia. Niissä on toistuvia teemoja kryptografiasta, taiteesta ja salaliittoteorioista. Hänen kirjojaan on käännetty 57 kielelle, ja vuoteen 2012 mennessä niitä on myyty yli 200 miljoonaa kappaletta. Kolme heistä, Enkelit & Demonit ,Da Vinci Code ja Inferno on sovitettu elokuviksi , kun taas yksi niistä, The Lost Symbol , on sovitettu televisio-ohjelmaksi.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 742: Brown's work is heavily influenced by academic Joseph Campbell, who wrote extensively on mythology and religion and was highly influential in the field of screenwriting. Brown also states he based the character of Robert Langdon on Campbell. Vizi tästä akateemisesta Joosepista taitaa ollakin jo paasaus! Brown does his writing in his loft. He told fans that he uses inversion therapy (ei tarkoita housut pois homopatiaa vaan roikkumista pää alaspäin kuin apina) to help with writer's block. He uses gravity boots and says, "hanging upside down seems to help me solve plot challenges by shifting my entire perspective". Dan on myös hanakka plagioimaan muiden yhtä onnettomia kirjoja.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 744: Benjy DeMott -vainaa "saw as three pervasive social myths: the assumption, held by many Americans, that we live in a classless society; the promise, held out by movies and television, that individual friendships between blacks and whites can vanquish racism all by themselves; and the images of women, ubiquitous in popular culture, that render them almost indistinguishable from men." He opined that movements of the lower classes have a tendency to 'go awry.' Benjamin Haile DeMott was born on June 2, 1924, in Rockville Centre, N.Y.; his father was a carpenter, his mother a faith healer. He joined the Amherst faculty in 1951 and earned a Ph.D. in English literature from Harvard two years later. He observed that a tenet of national faith in America had been that "goodness equals laughter, that humour can banish crisis, that if you pack up your troubles and smile, horror will take to the caves". Critical response to Mr. DeMott's work was divided. His detractors saw his pop-culture references as forced efforts to look au courant.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 883: Nigel Blackwell on luovutettu Blackwellin henkilökunnalle. Blackwell Publishing myytiin vuonna 2006 572 miljoonalla eurolla. Toby ja hänen veljenpoikansa Nigel nettoivat suuren osan siitä.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 898: 5. Nora Roberts.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 899: Rikkaimmat "kirjailijat" - Nora Roberts.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 901: Nora Roberts on myydyin amerikkalainen kirjailija, jolla on yli 200 romanttista romaania. Roberts aloitti kirjoittamisensa 70-luvun lopulla ja teki bestsellerin "Playing the Odds" vuonna 1985.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 902: Kesäkuussa 2023 Nora Robertsin nettovarallisuus oli noin 390 miljoonaa dollaria, mikä tekee hänestä maailman viidenneksi rikkain kirjailija. Noran chicklit potaskaa löytyi saxannettuna Haparanda Hamnin båtklubbin kierrätyshyllystä. Norasta on pitkät paasauxet albumissa 309.
xxx/ellauri307.html on line 947: Elisabeth Badinterin nettovarallisuus on noin 1,3 miljardia dollaria, mikä tekee hänestä Jehovan ja Allahin jälkeen maailman kaikkien aikojen rikkaimman kirjailijan. Tästä badass jutkuttaresta on varhempi paasaus albumissa 116. Rahat tulee papan mainosfirmasta, ei badassin feminismikirjoista. Ämmä täyttää ensi vuonna 80. Se on islamofobi eikä ihme, juutalaisena.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 46: että ”et ole niin hieno kuin me etkä tule meidän porukkaan”, Anne-Mari kertoo. Niia kertoo joidenkin tyttöjen käyttävän vain mahdollisimman kalliita merkkivaatteita, jotta muut eivät pystyisi ”kopioimaan”, kun ei ole varaa. Pitäskö olla koulupuvut niikö anglosaxeilla? Paskat, varsinainen syy on tuloerot. Ruåzissa on enemmän mijardöörejä kuin brasseissa. Tuloerot on jo isommat kuin Venäjällä, tietää Hobla kertoa. Vittuako kaikki paha pitää rontata sisään anglosaxeilta? Se on kapitalismin laki, kerääntyminen ja kasaantuminen. Vitun brändit! Polttomerkit perseessä. Helvettiin kaikki indogermaanit. Mitäs läxit, mennään zuhnat volganmutkaan takaisin.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 55: Tobias Pettersson betalar lägre skatt på egendom i Sverige.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 59: – Det svenska samhällskontraktet har brutits. Modellen där man utbildar sig, jobbar och sparar till en bostad fungerar inte längre. Den har farit samma väg som The American Dream.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 74: – Det har varit spel mot ett mål gällande skattefördelar för dem som har tillgångar, säger Cervenka. Vad beror det på? – Ett litet rikt och högerriktat lands syndrom: vi låter folk tro vi måste ha de lägsta skatterna för företag och kapital för att kunna konkurrera. På 1970- och 1980-talen hade vi problemet att företagare flyttade utomlands. Skatten var så hög att de kunde förlora sina företag. – I dag är det en helt annan värld. Sverige är ett av de bästa länderna i världen att äga tillgångar.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 91: – Det har blivit omöjligt att arbeta sig till en förmögenhet. Modellen där du utbildar dig, jobbar och lägger undan pengar varje månad för att köpa en bostad fungerar inte längre. Inte ens om du jobbar som läkare och kan lägga undan 1 000 euro i månaden. Bostadspriserna har stigit snabbare än du hinner spara till.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 93: – Det bygger på att vanliga människor ska jobba på och pumpa in internationellt sett väldigt höga skatter, medan de som äger kapital procentuellt ska bidra med väldigt lite.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 152: edes anglosaxittu vaikka kaveri on puolinobelisti. Poängen är att människans villkor i stort sätt är
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 183: piirtää pikku mummin jättimäisexi isohampaisexi robotixi. Muut hahmot ovat ihan pieniä.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 213: Eräs "Angela" työskentelee parhaillaan puolustusministeriön sponsoroimassa projektissa, joka koskee tulevaisuuden itseorganisoituvia järjestelmiä ja robottiarmeijoita.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 224: "Komentaja! Minun on todellakin..." SUU KIINNI ja suu auki, nyt tulee patukka-armeijan patukkaa! "Budda kobeddaja, kokki om Dorlo, siis Ked Hale om Dorth Dagoda --- lups lups mums mums."
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 331: River Tam oli tohtori Simon Tamin teini-ikäinen sisar. Molemmat turvautuivat Malcolm Reynoldsin Firefly - luokan kuljetusalukseen, joka tunnetaan nimellä Serenity. Häntä pidetään ihmelapsena, älykkäänä yli 10-vuotiaana ja urheilullisesti lahjakkaana. Tohtori Mathiasin intensiivisen kokeilun jälkeen parlamentin – Alliancen hallitsevan elimen – toimesta River muutettiin osittain henkisesti epävakaaksi psyykkiseksi aseeksi, joka oli tarkoitettu salaiseen valtion käyttöön. Hänen veljensä Simon pelasti hänet kalliilla kustannuksilla, mutta useat Alliancen agentit, pääasiassa Lawrence Dobson, kaksi sinikäsineistä miestä, seurasivat häntä hellittämättä. McGinnis, palkkionmetsästäjä Jubal Early ja lopuksi Operative. Lähes kaikki juoksuaikansa hän vietti Serenityn miehistön kanssa, josta tuli hänen suurperheensä.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 357: Einstein had three children. The oldest was a daughter named Lieserl. She was unknown to the world at large until a trove of early letters between Einstein and his first wife Mileva were discovered in 1986. These mentioned a daughter, born in around 1902 before Einstein and Mileva married. The fate of the child is unknown, and it is likely she was given over to someone else to raise. She disappears from history at that point, and she probably died very young. Einstein never mentioned her to anyone and does not appear to have ever laid eyes on her. He just got laid by Milena.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 359: The second was a son named Hans Albert (called “Albert” by his parents), who attained a doctorate in engineering and became a university professor, homeless, and an acknowledged expert on hydraulics. He was obviously quite intelligent, although not quite at changing-the-entire-precepts-of-physics level.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 377: Chileläinen liguuri Ferrada de Nöj, Karolinskan professori emeritus, on aiheuttanut ällöpäille länkkäreille Ruåzissa aika paljon dålig stämningiä. I en intervju i den italienska tidningen L'Eco di Bergamo i januari 2019 fick Ferrada de Noli förklara varför han nominerade Julian Assange och Edward Snowden till Nobels fredspris, istället för att betrakta deras handlingar som illegala. Han svarade: ”Enligt internationell rätt är det som Assange har fördömt som istället borde betraktas som kriminellt”.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 379: De Noli opponerade sig mot vad han då beskrev som ”flockimmunitetstrategi” (svenska myndigheter förnekade att ha haft en sådan), och i en intervju i juli 2020 deklarerade att istället endast ett upptäckande av vaccin skulle förutsätta nedbringandet av pandemin. Då nämndes han i en kultur-ledarartikel i Expressen (2-04-20) bland de tre forskarna som utpekades där som ”Corona haverister”, som inriktade ”kritik mot Anders Tegnell och Folkhälsomyndigheten”. I november 2021 deklarerade han, ”Om jag fick igenom min vilja skulle jag göra vaccination – med undantag för kliniska fall – obligatorisk för alla medborgare i alla länder”. Ruåzalaisille ei Nolin tarjoama Sputnik kelvannut. Ylläri. Ruåzalaiset ovat lähes yhtä vastenmielisiä länsiotuxia kuin anglosaxit. Ehkä vika onkin länsigermaaninen perimä?
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 408: Dobby
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 410: JD Robb alias Nora Roberts on mauton persu. Ylellisyyden huippua on pehmyt punainen kokolattiamatto ja kristallikilluttimet, hajuvesi ja samppanja. Punainen on maatiainen väri. Samppanjaa saa myös festarien VIP alueilla, joissa on vesivessat eikä näy patraskin riekunta lavoilla. Kun vielä vaientuisi ns. musiikki niin oisi helpompi verkostua.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 418: Eveen tekee vaikutuxen Roarken takatukka, kiiltelevä Rolex, yxityinen suihkari ja pössyttely. Rourken rööki haisi houkuttelevalta. Winstonia röyhyttävät Laura Bush, Princess Caroline, ja Nora Roberts. Winston tastes GOOD like a cigarette should! USA 2050 on dystopia, jossa tupakointi, aseenkanto ja hississä pystynainti on kielletty. Kahvi on korviketta koska Amazon on poltettu.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 433: Mitä pidät ruuasta? Tämo hyvvee! Kuten sanoin sellainen mä olen! en kohtele kaltoin naarasapinoita, vain nautoja ja vihamiehiä. Pyllyllä rikastunut Sharon oli säälittävä toisin kuin tää tuhnuinen poliisi. Rourkella on hissejä ja robotteja. On minulla niitäkin. Minua kiinnostaa miten apinat on eri välineillä vahingoittaneet toisiaan. Tyylikäs väkivalta sopii miekkoselle hyvin. Kun tyylikäs keskijalkani osui miestä haaroihin hän sai muuta ajateltavaa. Roarke hypisteli taskun kautta esinettä jonka oli sinne tuikannut. Roarken kalu oli kova mutta suu pehmeä. Toisella se töykki ja toisella näykki kuin särki matoa. Hermostunut riemu täytti Even, ja hän tunsi kostuvansa. Voimakas kalu tutisutti häntä. Tässä ja nyt se sinne! Mutta ei. Perinteinen taskupuhelu keskeyttää yhdynnän. Roarke löpsähtää. Taskuun jääussel Even tissinnappi. Typerys.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 512: "Kenkälaatikot oli pinottu väärin päällikkö", inttää haisupyrstö lakukepille. Juu kyllä perpetraattori on selkeästi senaattori, vain sillä oli korruptoitu vapaa pääsy rikospaikalle. Ei sentään, jenkki- ym länkkärien trillereissä ei plutokraattipaskiaiset juuri koskaan ole konnia. Size on se senaattorin liukas apuri. Jepjep, sehänse onkin, selvisi kurkkaamalla lopusta. Roarke on törkymöykky öykkäri, mutta ilmeisesti jenkkirouvat arvostavat sellaista. Okei, jokohan tässä olisi jo riittävästi Genital Roberzilta. Vittu että tääkin nide oli pulppia.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 524: Pälä pälä. Muuan Ralph Marvin Tumaob päättelee, että Rorty sai vaikutteita Jean-François Lyotardin suurista kertomuxista eli metanarratiiveista. Sekin vielä. Rortyn neopragmatismi on antifilosofista ja antiintellektuaalista ja altistaa ihmiset tavanomaiselle retoriselle manipulaatiolle. Hän osoitti "lattajalkaista tietämättömyyttä tieteellisen tutkimuxen menetelmistä ja niiden voimasta" (Dennett).
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 546: Kierkegaard’s view was that one’s relation to a deity is irreducible to a creed (TRR, pp. 391–392). Instead of belief, what is vital is the religious romance. Willy to believe. The intimacy between a lesser being and a greater being is something we find in Keats' Endymion. Rorty analogizes religious faith with the experience of lovemaking. Unfair relations are valuable if they are able to deepen an individual’s unique life experience. They redeem the believer and the lover by helping them grow meaningfully, not by stretching uncomfortably. Religious connections range from "one of adoring obedience, or ecstatic communion, or quiet confidence, or some combination of these". Sounds a lot like Al Bundy's Love And Marrage.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 548: Rorty defines redemptive truth as "a set of beliefs that would end, once and for all, the process of reflection on what to do with ourselves". A hand job, that is what I need. While science offers us ‘‘an edifying example of tolerant conversability’’ or of ideal social cooperation, it remains an impoverished resource for self-flourishing. Kukoistus, hei täältäkö Eski Saarinen sen otti? Rortylta? No hmmm, se on kyllä positiivisen psykologian avainsanoja.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 550: What does it mean to flourish? As a person, I mean. We can probably agree that a plant which is healthy and blooming can be said to “flourish,” and that a business that is booming and raking in record profit is “flourishing.” But what does it mean for a human being to flourish?
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 579: Rorty tunnustaa, ettei hänellä ole paljoa luottamusta liberaalien arvojen vakauteen. He ovat liian riippuvaisia modernin lännen yhteiskuntapoliittisen paradigman vakaumuksesta. Hänen mielestään keskinäinen kunnioitus, erilaisuuden suvaitsevaisuus ja sosiaalinen yhteistyö ovat vaarassa vaarallisten tapahtumien tullessa. Tunnekykymme voivat murtua, jos terroristit käyttävät ydinaseita kansalaisjärjestyksen tuhoamiseen tai jos globaali talousjärjestelmä horjuttaa keskiluokan turvallisuutta.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 829: Darob, daß nirgend ein Jottapa ettei mitään enää
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 916: My sense of the holy, insofar as I have one, is bound up with the hope that someday, any millennium now, my remote descendants will live in a global civilization in which love is pretty much the only law. In such a society, communication would be domination-free, class and caste would be unknown, hierarchy would be a matter of temporary pragmatic convenience, and power would be entirely at the disposal of the free agreement of a literate and well-educated electorate (TFR, p. 40).
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 972: Alle Jahre wieder geht er um wie ein Virus: der Wunsch, alles stehen und liegen zu lassen, auf dem Jakobsweg zu wandern oder mit dem Segelboot die Welt zu umrunden. Ob bewusst oder nicht: All die Zivilisationsmüden treten in die Fußstapfen des griechischen Einsiedlers Hyperion, erfunden von Friedrich Hölderlin. Hyperions Lebensgeschichte ist Hölderlins literarische Anklage gegen das spießbürgerliche, dumpfe und materialistische Deutschland seiner Zeit, das ihm als Künstler und Idealisten kaum Luft zum Atmen ließ, nein in einen Turm einschließ. Seine Sprache war schon damals gewöhnungsbedürftig und ist es heute erst recht: Da „säuseln holdselige Tage“, es neigen sich „lispelnde Bäume“ und es „gährt das Leben“. Doch die Fragen des lange verkannten Genies sind nicht aus der Welt: Wie kann der Mensch seine Vereinzelung überwinden? Auf welchem Weg eine bessere Welt schaffen? Und wie im Einklang mit der Natur leben? Das antike Griechenland mag heute als Vorbild ausgedient haben, aber die Suche nach Antworten auf diese Fragen bleibt aktuell.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 1014: Germaaninen (saksa, gootti, langobardi, muinaisyläsaksa, ruotsi) luna; sukulaissanat viro lunastama, pohjoissaame lonuhit (muuttua). Englanniksi redeem, bail out, sax. Erlösen.
xxx/ellauri312.html on line 1015: lunastaa ruotsiksi återlösa - Sanakirja.org (suomi-ruotsi) Mobiiliversio. fi-en. en-fi. Synonyymit. armahtaa. vapahtaa. Der Gott armahtaa, der Christ vapahtaa, der Geist lunastaa. Paxu lompakko, helppo on lempeä pyytää. Luokat. Uskonto. Verbit. Kansantalous | Suomen velkaongelma ei ole niin paha kuin kansalle kerrotaan. "Puheissa on pelottelun retoriikkaa." Tuomiot | Nainen keskeytti seksin hakeakseen kondomin, silloin mies raiskasi hänet.
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 104: Eugene Gladstone O’Neill (16. lokakuuta 1888 New York, Yhdysvallat – 27. marraskuuta 1953 Boston, Yhdysvallat) oli toinen yhdysvaltalainen näytelmäkirjailija. O’Neill toi Anton Tšehovin, Henrik Ibsenin ja August Strindbergin edustaman dramaattisen realismin amerikkalaiseen näytelmäkirjallisuuteen. Heti ensimmäinen O’Neillin näytelmä, Taivaanrannan tuolla puolen (Beyond the Horizon, 1920), voitti näyttämötaiteen Pulitzer-palkinnon. Hän sai kaksi muuta Pulitzeria näytelmistään Agatha Christie (1922) ja Strange Interlude (1928). Hänelle myönnettiin kirjallisuuden Nobel-palkinto vuonna 1936.
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 128: Neillin elinaikana erityisesti ruotsalaiset olivat jostain syystä ihastuneet hänen tuotantoonsa, josta syystä hän saikin Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon 1936. Niinpä näytelmän maailmanensi-ilta tapahtui 2. helmikuuta 1956 Tukholman Dramatenissa, ruotsiksi nimellä Lång dags färd mot natt. Sen ohjasi Bengt Morot, ja rooleissa nähtiin Carl Larsson (James Tyrone), Inga Dagblad (Mary Tyrone), Olof Palme (James Tyrone, Jr.), Jali Kulli (Edmund Tyrone) ja Hanna Westerlund (Cathleen). Vuonna 1988 näytelmä tuli uudelleen Dramatenin ohjelmistoon Ingmar Bergmanin ohjaamana; Jali Kulli oli nyt siiltynyt nuolemman pojan loolista isän looliin, painoi jallua ja haki auton lattialta mulkkua.
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 129: Näytelmästä ohjasi Sidney Lumet vuonna 1962 samannimisen elokuvan, jonka osia näyttelivät Katharine Hepburn (Mary), Ralph Richardson (James), Jason Robards (Jamie), Dean Stockwell (Edmund) ja Jeanne Barr (Cathleen). Robards, Stockwell ja Hepburn palkittiin rooleistaan Cannesin elokuvajuhlilla, ja Hepburn sai myös parhaan naisnäyttelijän Oscar-ehdokkuuden.
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 145: Känslan av samhörighet när man sjunger tillsammans är nåt heligt, säger en annan svensk käring med glasögon på. Nina Österholm jobbar med disinformation i Helsingfors församlingar.
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 182: – Jag tycker det är hoppfullt. Tanken på att vara Merete Mozzarella i all evighet tycker jag är ganska tung. Och så skulle mina vänner i helvetet tycka med. Med vänner om ljus skulle vi tala. Jag älskar stearinljus. Sedan skulle det vara roligt att få ett svar på vad som var meningen med allting också, säger Mozzarella. En lösning på teodicéproblemet, alltså frågan om hur Gud kan vara både god och allsmäktig när onda saker sker, skulle hon också gärna få. Men hur ska det gå till om man inte är en själv nå mer?
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 285: where he was, if he had a good job or not, or if he was alive or dead," said daddy
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 291: unforgiving management style is similar to that of Apple co-founder Steve Jobs,
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 294: obs">Jobs was placed for adoption as an infant by his biological parents,
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 302: problematically. Ted died on March 16, 2015. Is Jeff Bezos alive?
xxx/ellauri314.html on line 380: Jakobs Gud skall dig bevara.
xxx/ellauri319.html on line 249: Dave ei koskaan uskonut, että hänen olisi pitänyt turvautua johonkin näin rajuun keinoon. Toisen yksityisyyteen tunkeutuminen oli vastoin hänen moraaliaan, mutta hän ei enää luottanut vaimoonsa. Ei sen jälkeen, miten vaimo oli kohdellut häntä. Dave huomasi istuvansa yksin kulmasohvassa hämärässä olohuoneessa miettimässä seuraavaa siirtoaan. Nää apinoiden keekoilut mobiililla vuosituhannella on jotain aivan kamalaa.
xxx/ellauri319.html on line 296: Visarion Belinskyi suhtautui kielteisesti Taras Shevchenkon runokokoelman "Kobzar" julkaisemiseen vuonna 1840, mikä oli käännekohta ukrainalaisen kirjallisuuden historiassa, sekä E. Hrebinkan julkaisemaan ukrainalaiseen almanakkaan "Lastivka".. Näiden kahden ukrainalaisen julkaisun julkaiseminen sai V. Belinskyin puhumaan julkisesti ukrainalaisen kirjallisuuden kehitysnäkymistä. Välittämättä lainkaan kummankin kirjan kustannuksista, hän "yhdisti ne yhdeksi kriittiseksi artikkeliksi", koska molemmat oli kirjoitettu "pikkuvenäläisellä murteella". V. Belinsky esittää pohjimmiltaan tärkeän kysymyksen — onko maailmassa edes pientä venäjän kieltä, voiko olla pientä venäläistä kirjallisuutta, ja pitäisikö "meidän" kirjoittajien kirjoittaa pikkuvenäjäksi? Vastauksena näin muotoiltuun kysymykseen hän väitti, ettei kirjallisuudella eikä ukrainan kielellä ole mahdollisuuksia spontaanille kehitykselle, ja hän viittasi Hoholiin esimerkkinä kirjailijasta, joka "on intohimoisesti rakastunut Ukrainaan, mutta tästä huolimatta kirjoittaa venäjäksi, ei ukrainan kielellä".
xxx/ellauri319.html on line 341: Robert Burns
xxx/ellauri319.html on line 357: Nikolay Dobrolyubov
xxx/ellauri319.html on line 365: Friedrich Robert Faehlmann
xxx/ellauri319.html on line 377: Robert A. Heinlein, American author
xxx/ellauri319.html on line 501: Tobias Smollett
xxx/ellauri319.html on line 505: Robert Louis Stevenson (1850–1894), Neo-romantic Scottish essayist, novelist and poet, is thought to have suffered from tuberculosis during much of his life. He spent the winter of 1887–1888 recuperating from a presumed bout of tuberculosis at Dr. E.L. Trudeau's Adirondack Cottage Sanitarium in Saranac Lake, New York.
xxx/ellauri319.html on line 527: Thomas Wolfe (1900–1938), American author, died of tuberculosis of the brain. His 1929 novel, Look Homeward, Angel, makes several references to the problem of consumption, though Wolfe's condition appeared rather suddenly in 1937.
xxx/ellauri319.html on line 550: Better known as Blackbeard. Died in battle against obert_Maynard" title="Robert Maynard">Robert Maynard
xxx/ellauri319.html on line 678: Alamo aloitti saarnaamisen Los Angelesissa 1960-luvulla antikatolisuuden, homofobian ja moniavioisuuden alustalla nuorten naisten kanssa. Tony Alamo Christian Ministriesilla oli huipussaan tuhansia seuraajia ympäri maata.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 42: Suomesta näyttää tulevan uusi Kuuba, kun Sale ottaa tänne jenkkitukikohtia. Kohta paukkuu ohjuxet meidän päiden yli, sitten kohti. Samaan aikaan toisaalla Hoblan haukka ajaa Ukrainalle pitkän matkan ohjuxia, aivan sekopää. Kuuma loppu näyttää tulevan historian kuumimmalle vuodelle.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 61: obituary.jpg?a.balancewhite=true" height="250px"/>
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 138: Nojautujat ovat herkkiä ihmisiä, jotka ovat kehittäneet ympärilleen kuoren, joka suojelee heitä, mutta heidän täytyy luottaa siihen, että muut kantavat heidät läpi elämän vaikeuksista . Heillä on alhainen energiataso ja he ovat siten riippuvaisia. Ylikuormittuessaan he kehittävät niitä, joita tyypillisesti ajattelemme neuroottisiksi oireiksi: fobioita, pakkomielteitä ja pakko-oireita, yleistä ahdistusta, hysteriaa, muistinmenetyksiä ja niin edelleen, riippuen heidän elämäntapansa yksityiskohdista. (Avuttomat)
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 170: 'Darling,' she cried, 'you've got to think of the repercussions. The Duke was married to a peer's daughter who had been Mistress of the Robes to Queen Mary. He was my lover, of course, but I could never admit to it publicly.'
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 204: A group of snide and snobbish courtiers, allegedly by Princess Margaret, campaigned to influence Earl Spencer into withdrawing the two tickets he had allocated to his mother-in-law for the wedding in St Paul's Cathedral.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 266: John Grisham USA 280M jännäri Särkelä itte Writing’s still the most difficult job I’ve ever had – but it’s worth it.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 267: Nora Roberts USA 250M romanssi Pilu I loved the process of writing.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 272: Dan Brown USA 110M jännäri Robert Langdon I still get up every morning at 4 A.M.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 363: Det å bli gammel, tenkte jeg ikke over før for 2 år siden da jeg plutselig havnet på sykehuset en morgen. Jeg skulle dusje, så da vannet kom over hodet mitt, var det plutselig vondt å få vann i håret? Jeg skjønte ingenting, så ble alt rundt meg "rosa?" Da besvimte jeg og hektet av glassdøren på dusjkabinettet. Jeg våknet etter noen sekunder på gulvet utenfor dusjen med døren på snei! Jeg hadde ikke følt meg dårlig før dette. Var frisk som en fisk og syklet mye. På sykehuset konstanterer de dobbel lungebetennelse, og flere mangler i blodet, bl.annet Kadium? Og jeg som spiser variert mat, tar mine vitaminer og noe kosttilskudd, vet ikke hvorfor dette skjedde. Men etter noen dager på sykehus var alt ok igjen. Det var ikke hyggelig å reise til sykehus med håndkle rundt håret og badehåndkle rundt kroppen uten noen andre ting med. Jeg ler av det i dag. Men tilbake til det å bli gammel! Plutselig skjer det noe uventet, som artrose, dårligere tarmfunksjon. Jeg la om kostholdet mitt 100%, og vips var alle smerter borte, tarmene har begynt å fungere normalt igjen etter å ha fått Ulcerøs kolitt. Med min nye måte å spise på, er alt bra hittil. Håper det fortsetter slik. Når man blir gammel, gjør det ofte litt vondt her og der. Men kostholdet er nøkkelen til god og smertefri helse. God sommer!
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 365: Er det deprimerende å bo i Norge? Jeg flyttet fra Norge for 6 år siden mye fordi jeg ikke kunne forestille meg noe mer deprimerende enn å jobbe 8 timer hver dag bare for å overleve, og fremdeles ikke ha råd til å leve, og jeg har ikke angret et sekund.
xxx/ellauri320.html on line 369: For å oppsummere, Norge er et dyrt land hvor du nå om dagen ikke får jobb i kassa på REMA uten 3 års videregående utdanning, og forventningene til hva folk skal prestere i livet for å få lov til å være del av samfunnet kan knekke selv de sterkeste mennesker.
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 196: Gina Lollobrigida: Gina Lollobrigida
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 206: Jennifer Jones runs about her emotions like a headless chicken. One word will suffice for Gina Lollobrigida - mitkä lollot! No ei, Ginalla oli sievät pienet nukenkasvot eikä mitenkään suhteettoman suuret puskurit. Bogart oli surkea ja ikävystyttävä hukkapätkä sössöttäjä kuten aina.
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 208: Lollo-täti (1927-2023) kuoli vasta tammikuussa tänä vuonna. Hän oli pikaluistelija Francesca Lollobrigidan isotäti. Luigina Lollobrigidan isä oli huonekalupuuseppä, ja perhe asui pittoreskisti vuoristokylässä Latiumissa.
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 212: Lollobrigidan ensimmäinen elokuva oli Aquila nera (1946), mutta monet hänen osistaan olivat varsin pieniä, lolloja lukuunottamatta. Hänen ensimmäinen pääroolinsa oli vuonna 1949, ja vuoden 1952 ranskalainen seikkailuelokuva Näytä tädillesi tulppaani toi hänen lolloilleen kansainvälistä huomiota. Seuraavana vuonna ilmestyi Lollobrigidan ensimmäinen englanninkielinen elokuva Afrikan aarre (Beat the Devil).
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 214: Kuten latinaxi yllä sanottiin, Lollobrigidaa alettiin 1950-luvulla kutsua seksisignumiksi, ja hänestä käytettiin myös lempinimeä La Lollo. Hänen tunnetuimpia elokuviaan on Trapetsi (Trapeze, 1956).
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 215: Lollobrigida alkoi 1970-luvulla keskittyä näyttelemisen sijaan valokuvajournalismiin sekä kosmetiikkayrityksen johtotehtäviin. Hän näytteli lollojaan 1980- ja 1990-luvulla enää epäsäännöllisesti elokuvissa ja televisiossa. Hänellä oli muun muassa vuonna 1984 rooli televisiosarjassa Viinitila Falcon Crest.
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 217: Lollobrigidalla oli poika, joka syntyi avioliitosta jugoslavialaisen tohtorin Mikko Skoficin kanssa. Avioliitto kesti 22 vuotta vuosina 1949–1971. Lollo oli sitkeä täti ja sen pienet tissit oli ihanat. Vyötä ei olis tarvinnut kiristää noin tiukalle jotta kannut näyttäisivät isoilta.
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 220: obrigida-003.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 221: obrigida-which-are-basically-astounding-best-of-comic-books-30.jpg" height="200px" />
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 323: Marikan kirjajuttuja: Svetlana Aleksijevitš – tuleva nobelisti?
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 327: ”En ole kiinnostunut tapahtumista sinänsä; en Venäjän hyökkäyssodasta sinänsä; en Tsernobylin onnettomuudesta sinänsä. Olen kiinnostunut siitä, mitä ihmisille niissä tapahtuu; miten ihminen toimii ja reagoi; mitä hän tuntee.” Svetlana Aleksijevits
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 329: Ukrainalaissyntyinen Svetlana Aleksijevitš sai kuin saikin Nobel-palkinnon hävityn Krimin sodan ansioista 2015. Aleksijevitš on kuvannut Turoman mukaan dystooppista maailmaa, Seppo Puttonen puhuu karusta maailmasta. Vittu se kuvaa juuri tätä maailmaa, ei jotain muuta.
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 333: Nainen on voittanut Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon vain 13 kertaa, eikä venäläinen nainen kertaakaan, ei edes isovenäläinen nainen. Jos haluttaisiin päästä tasoihin, olisi naisen vuoro voittaa seuraavat 98 vuotta ja sitten tulisi venäläisten vuoro. Näin ollen tänäkin vuonna voisi todeta, että nyt olisi taas naisen vuoro. Edellisen kerran nainen palkittiin toissavuonna 2013, kun kanadalainen novellisti Alice Munro nousi Tukholman konserttitalon lavalle vastaanottamaan oman mitalinsa ja sitä edellisen kerran joulukuisesta juhlaseremoniasta sai nauttia saksalainen Herta Müller vuonna 2009. Munrosta sevverran että ko. haahka antoi toisen miehensä bylsiä tytärtänsä eikä ollut siitä millänsäkään. "Minähän tässä olen uhri", kaakatti Alice. "Kodinrikkoja", sanoivat tyttärestä molemmat. Onnexi Alice sai alzheimerin ja on nyt vihdoin heittänyt lusikkansa nurkkaan.
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 339: Aleksijevitš on Suomessa melko tuntematon kirjailija. Käännöskirjallisuus painottuu maassamme vahvasti angloamerikkalaiseen kirjallisuuteen ja siksi Aleksijevitšinkin teoksista on suomennettu vain kaksi: Sodalla ei ole naisen kasvoja (1985, suomennettu 1988) ja Tsernobylista nousee rukous (1997, suomennettu 2000). Tosin Aleksijevitšin tuotantokaan ei ole niin laaja kuin esimerkiksi veikkauslistojen kärkimiehillä, angloamerikkalaisilla Philip Rothilla tai Haruki Murakamilla ja osasyynä kirjojen vähäisempään määrään on kirjailijan perin erikoinen tyylilaji.
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 361: Sitten sodat saivat väistyä uuden aiheen tieltä. 1990-luvun puolessa välissä Aleksijevitš tarttui aiheeseen, josta hänellä itselläänkin oli valkovenäläisenä omakohtaista kokemusta. Huhtikuun 26. päivänä, puoli kahden maissa yöllä Tsernobylin ydinvoimalan neljäs reaktori räjähti. Taivas värjäytyi ensin punaiseksi, sitten siniseksi ja sen jälkeen voimalan ylle muodostui sienen muotoinen pilvi. Ihmiset ryntäsivät ikkunoihin ja kaduille katselemaan ihmeellisen kaunista näkyä, eivätkä ymmärtäneet todistavansa yhtä maailmanhistorian vakavinta katastrofia.
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 363: Aleksijevitš yritti kirjoittaa Tsernobylista jo paljon aikaisemmin. Hän vieraili alueella useasti ja jutteli asiantuntijoiden sekä onnettomuuden kokeneiden kanssa, mutta tajusi pian, ettei kirjan aika ollut vielä. Katastrofi oli ihmisten mielessä vielä vereslihalla, eikä kukaan ymmärtänyt, mitä oikeastaan oli tapahtunut. Ihmisen ajatus ei kulje kärsiessä ja niinpä Aleksijevitsin piti vielä odottaa. Tsernobylista nousee sienipilvi ilmestyi lopulta vuonna 1997.
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 371: Tsernobylin voimalan tämänhetkinen tila saa myös lukijan raapimaan hermostuneena päätään: kukaan ei tiedä, missä kunnossa teräsbetonin ympäröimä rikkinäinen reaktori on. Robottien avulla hätäisesti rakennettua sarkofagia ei saatu aikanaan tiiviiksi ja tiedetään varmaksi, että kuori vuotaa – mutta miten paljon? Täytyy olla todella vankkumaton ydinvoiman kannattaja, jos tämä teos ei saa pientäkään epäilyä aikaiseksi siitä, voisiko energiaa sittenkin tuottaa jollain toisella tavalla turvallisemmin. Toisaalta muilla villieläimillä on ollut paratiisimaiset oltavat, kun apinoita ei ole juuri näkynyt.
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 373: Aleksijevitš on joutunut teostensa kanssa myös valtaapitävien hampaisiin. Sodalla ei ole naisen kasvoja -kirjaa syytettiin epäisänmaalliseksi, kun siinä nostettiin esiin sodan pelottavuus ja kauheus. Rintamalla taistelleiden neuvostonaisten kiillotetun sankarimyytin mureneminen oli joillekin tahoille liikaa. Neuvostoliiton ja Afganistanin sodasta kertovasta kirjasta Aleksijevitš haastettiin oikeuteen saakka, mutta juttu raukesi lopulta. Tsernobyl-kirja taas ei ole ollut mieluista luettavaa niille, jotka pyrkivät (edelleen) peittelemään ja vähättelemään onnettomuuden seurauksia.
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 379: Tutustuttuani Aleksijevitšin kirjailijauraan ja kahteen suomennettuun teokseen, taidan yhtyä mielipiteisiin siitä, että palkinto joutaisi tänä vuonna mielellään mennä Aleksijevitsille. Nobel-tunnustuksen myötä hänen tuotantonsa leviäisi entistäkin laajemmalle ja yhä useampi lukija tarttuisi hänen tärkeisiin teoksiinsa. Maailmamme tarvitsee lisää inhimillisyyttä ja Svetlana Aleksijevitšin kaltaisia vompatin näköisiä kirjoittajia.
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 393: Svetlana Aleksijevits syntyi Ukrainassa 1948 ja asui pääsääntöisesti Belarusissa, vaikka kirjoittikin venäjäxi. Loikkasi 2003 Lukashenkaa pakoon Valko-venäjältä länteen jossa viihtyi 10v, palasi Krimin selkkauxen aattona Belarusiin. Noobel päsähti vuonna 2015 Krimin ansiosta. Uusi lähtö Belarusista tuli 2020, mistä lähtien se on ajanut länkkärien asiaa Berliinistä käsin. Vanhahan sekin alkaa olla, Kristina tätiäkin vanhempi.
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 429: Veijarit Klim ja Koba vielä iloisina joholla
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 493: Surullista että Svetlana lainaa tunneköyhää Dostojevskiä, joka jaxoi paasata talousliberalismin puolesta. 20v svobodan jälkeen ex-nuoret tiesivät, mistä kapitalismissa on kymysys: eriarvoisuutta, köyhyyttä, röyhkeää rikkautta. Vanhat aatteet heräsivät eloon: mahtava imperiumi, rautainen ote, Venäjän oma tie. Stalin oli eto valtiomies vaikka teki virheitä.
xxx/ellauri329.html on line 496: Arvoituxellinen venäläinen pillu. Kommari on lukenut Marxia, antikommunisti myös ymmärtänyt aaberin: en voi rikastua törkeästi muiden kustannuxella. Ei osoitettu avoimesti vastarintaa. Siis mille? Yhteiskunnalliselle tasa-arvolle? Erityisen paha oli että talonmiehen tienesti oli 3/4 insinöörin palkasta. Mites sillä kasvattanet hajurakoa? Rahan keximinen oli kuin Zernobylin räjähdys. Kulturnyje köyhtyivät aivan sikana. Rahatta olet pelkkä nolla.
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 45: Heinrich Böll sai Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon vuonna 1972 suurelta osin tämän romaanin ansiosta. Romaanin päähenkilö Leni Riefenstahl on 48-vuotias, hänen miehensä on kaatunut sodassa, poika istuu vankilassa. Elämä on kohdellut Leniniä alun pitäen kovakouraisesti, mutta kaikista kolhuista huolimatta Lenin uskoo yhä elämään, sen myönteisiin voimiin, rakkauteen (Fig 1). (Kirjasampo)
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 51: Group Portrait with Lady (German: Gruppenbild mit Dame) is a novel by Nobel Prize winning author Heinrich Böll, published in 1971. The novel revolves around a woman named Leni, and her friends, foes, lovers, employers and others and in the end tells the stories of all these people in a small city in western Germany in the 1930s and 1940s. As is usual in Böll's novels, the main focus is the Nazi era, from the perspective of ordinary people. (Wikipedia en)
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 55: Leni lernt den sowjetischen Kriegsgefangenen Boris Lvovitich Koltovskij kennen. Die beiden beginnen, obwohl dies verboten und außerordentlich gefährlich ist, eine Liebesbeziehung, und Leni bekommt kurz vor Ende des Krieges ein Kind von Boris. Boris gerät durch unglückliche Umstände, für einen deutschen Kriegsgefangenen gehalten, in ein alliiertes Kriegsgefangenenlager und stirbt in einem "französischen" Bergwerk in Lothringen. Lenis Liebe zu dem russischen Kriegsgefangenen Boris, die ihr die Verunglimpfung „blonde Sowjet-Hure“ eingetragen hat. Leni zeigt sich unberührt von gesellschaftlichen Tendenzen, bestimmte Personengruppen auszugrenzen und „abfällig“ zu behandeln. „Abfall“ und „Abfälligkeit“ sind nach Aussage des Autors Schlüsselwörter des Romans. (Wikipedia de)
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 81: Im Jahr 1970 rekonstruiert ein Erzähler das Leben von Leni Pfeiffer: 1944 verliebt sie sich in den russischen Kriegsgefangenen Boris und wird schwanger. Boris stirbt ein Jahr später. Zeitlebens hat die durch und durch redliche Leni mit Anfeindungen zu kämpfen. 1970 gerät sie in Schwierigkeiten: Immobilienhaie wollen sie und ihre Untermieter aus ihrer Wohnung werfen. Freunde und Immigranten helfen der 48-Jährigen – die übrigens erneut schwanger ist, diesmal vom türkischen Müllmann Mehmet. Abfallmenschen hin und wieder.
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 88: Das Nobelpreis-Komitee sprach von einem „deutschen Wunder“ und verlieh Böll 1972 den Nobelpreis für seine Verdienste um die deutsche Nachkriegsliteratur.
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 98: Unternehmertochter Leni Gruyten versucht zeitlebens, ihren Idealen und Gefühlen treu zu bleiben selbst wenn dies bittere Konsequenzen nach sich zieht: So steht sie während des Zweiten Weltkriegs zu ihrer jüdischen Lehrerin und beginnt eine Liebesbeziehung mit einem russischen Kriegsgefangenen, von dem sie auch ein Kind bekommt. Und obwohl sie all diese geliebten Menschen verliert, gibt Leni nicht auf. Nach dem Krieg führt sie ein bescheidenes, aber glückliches Leben und verliebt sich im "Wohlstandsdeutschland" der Sechzigerjahre einmal mehr in einen gesellschaftlichen Außenseiter: den Türken Mehmet ...
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 100: Basierend auf dem Roman des Nobelpreisträgers Heinrich Böll erzählt "Gruppenbild mit Dame" die bewegende Geschichte einer Frau, die gegen alle gesellschaftlichen Widerstände nach ihren persönlichen Idealen lebt. Romy Schneider ("Sissi"), die hier nach 16 Jahren das erste Mal wieder in einem deutschen Film auftrat, brilliert in der Hauptrolle einer ebenso sensiblen wie selbstbewussten Frau, für die sie 1977 mit dem Filmband in Gold ausgezeichnet wurde. An ihrer Seite glänzen Heinrich Böll ("Nobelpreis"), Brad Dourif ("Einer flog über das Kuckucksnest", "Der Herr der Ringe - Die Gefährten") und Vadim Glowna ("Vier Minuten", "Baader").
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 121: Lenis Vater Hubert Gruyten ist Bauunternehmer. Bis 1933 operiert er hart an der Grenze zum Konkurs, dann geht es steil bergauf: Er verdient viel Geld am Bau des Westwalls. Dabei sind sich alle einig, dass er fachlich unbegabt ist. Er ist jedoch ein guter Organisator, furchtlos, vielleicht größenwahnsinnig. Er traut seiner Tochter trotz der schulischen Probleme viel zu. Wen er allerdings mit Bildung geradezu vollstopft, das ist sein Erstgeborener Heinrich Gruyten. Diesem will er den Krieg ersparen, doch der Junge, der mit seinem Vater ständig Streit hat, zieht diesem zum Trotz ins Feld und schickt Briefe mit Zitaten aus militärischen Texten nach Hause. 1940 stirbt der hochgebildete Heinrich einen sinnlosen Tod: Er und sein Vetter Erhard Schweigert werden wegen Fahnenflucht und Waffendiebstahls erschossen. Damit wird Leni zur „platonischen Witwe“: Sie wäre reif für Erhard und die Liebe gewesen und fieberte ihrem ersten Mal entgegen, draußen in freier Natur im Heidekraut. Der hochsensible Erhard hatte sie angebetet und ihr kühne Gedichte geschrieben, doch ansonsten waren beide so schüchtern, dass sie über ein paar Tänze nicht hinausgekommen waren, bevor der Tod Erhard holte. Leni fällt in tiefe Trauer.
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 125: Roman Sandgruber ist emeritierter Professor für Sozial- und Wirtschaftsgeschichte an der Linzer JKU und Mitglied der Österreichischen Akademie der Wissenschaften und ein gläubiget Katholiker. Er arbeitet an einem Buch über Hitlers Vater, das 2021 erscheinen wird. Er schämt sich Linzer zu sein, er ist dem Alois und Adi sehr böse immer noch. Er will von Heidlers alias Schlumpfgrubers Halbjudentum nichts hören. Leserfavoriten, meist gelesen: https:1//www.nachrichten.at/oberoesterreich/linz/linz-unbekannte-schlagen-43-jaehrigen-in-fh-toilette-zusammen. Der Christkindl ist wieder unterwegs. Lakimiehet saisi kaikki hävittää, sanoi Adolf nasevasti. Hitlerit pitivät katolista kirkkoa ahneena ja elämää vääristävien uskomusten opettajana. Sandgruberin kirja Hitlerin isästä ja Adolf-pojan kasvusta sisältää sivutolkulla pieteetillä valittuja yksityiskohtia ja kuvauksia suvun asuinpaikkakunnista. Mukana on kaikkea mahdollista nippelitietoa. Putinia ja Hitleriä yhdistää monikin asia, äkkää HS:n Anne Välinoro lopuxi vielä norauttaa vaipanvälistä. Putinia ja Hitleriä yhdistää täydellinen piittaamattomuus valtioiden rajoista ja itsemääräämisoikeudesta, fantasia oman historiallis-etnisen suurvallan kokoamisesta ja pitkälle pohjustettu propagandakoneisto. Kuulostaa jatkosodan Suomelta. Ei päivää ilman propagandaa.
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 146: Wochenlang halten Boris und Leni ihre Zuneigung geheim. Im Februar 1944 gestehen sie einander ihre Liebe, am 18. März kommt es während eines Bombenangriffs zwischen 14:02 Uhr und 15:18 Uhr zum ersten Geschlechtsverkehr. Man merkt Leni im Alltag an, dass sie liebt und geliebt wird. Sie erfindet einen neuen Typ Kranz, der nur aus Heidekraut besteht, das in rauen Mengen aus dem linksrheinischen Gebiet herbeizuschaffen ist. In einer Privatkapelle auf dem Friedhof bereitet sich Leni ihr Brautbett aus Heidekraut, und der 28. Mai 1944 wird ihr Glückstag: zwei Fliegerangriffe, während derer sich Boris und Leni unbeobachtet zurückziehen können. Lenis „glorreiche Zeit“ beginnt im Oktober 1944, als die Alliierten massive Angriffe auf die Region fliegen. Der Verfasser rechnet nach und kommt auf fast 24 volle Stunden, die Leni und Boris zwischen August und Dezember 1944 zusammen sind.
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 155: „Die Frage des Wohin war für die unterschiedlichsten Gruppen höchst aktuell. Wohin mit den Nazis, wohin mit den Kriegsgefangenen, wohin mit den Soldaten, wohin mit den Sklaven? Natürlich gabs da erprobte Lösungen: erschießen etc.“ (S. 289 f.)
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 165: Die Hoysers haben Lev wegen Scheckbetrugs ins Gefängnis gebracht. Sie sehen das als Liebesakt: Er müsse zur Vernunft gebracht und sein Stolz müsse – zu seinem eigenen Wohl – gebrochen werden. Der Verfasser sucht die Hoysers auf, die inzwischen das mächtigste Immobilienunternehmen der Stadt besitzen. Der alte Hoyser knöpft sich mit seinem Stock in Enterhakenmanier den Verfasser vor, was dessen uraltes Tweedsakko nicht verkraftet. Es entspinnt sich eine hitzige Debatte um die Unersetzbarkeit der Lieblingsjacke, um materielle und immaterielle Werte. Lottes Söhne Kurt und Werner Hoyser, früher als kriminell und schwer erziehbar verrufen, haben Jura und Volkswirtschaft studiert, sind gesellschaftstauglich geworden und würdige Erben ihres Großvaters. Für Leni wollen die Hoysers nur das Beste. Dennoch wollen sie sie und ihre zahlreichen Untermieter – darunter eine portugiesische Familie und türkische Müllmänner – aus ihrer Wohnung werfen. Das sei aber, so die Hoysers, eine „liebevolle Dirigierung“ – das sagen sie auch aus der Überzeugung heraus, dass in Altbauwohnungen gerne mal subversive Zellen gediehen und es außerdem nicht angehen könne, dass Fremdarbeiter so billig wohnen. Deren gute Entlohnung kalkuliere doch ein, dass ein erheblicher Teil als Miete im Land verbleibe. Solchen „Paradiesismus“ wollen Hoysers verhindern.
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 185: Leni, Boris und Lev sind eine Inkarnation der heiligen Familie in der deutschen Provinz. Sie sind obdachlos, von der Gesellschaft an den Rand gedrängt, angefeindet. Nicht im Stall, sondern in einem Gärtnerschuppen kommt Lev zur Welt. Durch Lenis Klosterschule und die Recherchen des Verfassers im kirchlichen Milieu kommen zahlreiche religiöse Motive in den Text, etwa die Jungfrauengeburt oder das Rosenwunder.
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 187: Böll gewichtet seine Figuren nach ihrer humanistischen und kulturellen Bildung und danach, ob sie menschlich und moralisch ihrem Bildungsstand Genüge tun. Lenis Potenzial wird durch das Bildungswesen verkannt, blockiert und beinahe zerstört. Die Geschichte bewegt sich in einem geistigen Koordinatensystem, das von großen Schriftstellern definiert wird, insbesondere Kafka, Trakl, Brecht und Hölderlin. Der Verfasser kommentiert die Lesegewohnheiten quasi aller Befragten.
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 209: Max Ferdinand Scheler (* 22. August 1874 in München; † 19. Mai 1928 in Frankfurt am Main) war ein deutscher Philosoph, Anthropologe und Soziologe. Scheler war der Sohn eines Domänenverwalters und einer orthodox-jüdischen Mutter. In Jena wurde Max 1897 bei dem Nobelisten Rudolf Eucken mit dem Thema Beiträge zur Feststellung der Beziehungen zwischen den logischen und ethischen Prinzipien promoviert. Im Jahr 1899 habilitierte er sich in Jena mit dem Thema Die transzendentale und die psychologische Methode. Im selben Jahr heiratete Scheler Amelie Ottilie, geborene Wollmann geschiedene von Dewitz-Krebs (1868–1924). Aufgrund der Lektüre von Husserls Logischen Untersuchungen und eines Skandals um seine Affäre mit Helene Voigt-Diederichs, der Ehefrau von Eugen Diederichs, musste er seine Position in Jena aufgeben.
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 231: Werte stehen für sich selbst, sie sind nicht auf anderes zurückzuführen.Sie sind erfahrbare geistige Gegenstände, sie sind objektiv und sie wirken auf das Handeln. So verneint er beispielsweise den Zusammenhang der intuitiven Erfahrung mit dem Lusterleben wie z.B. Schwanzwedeln.
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 259: Edmund Gustav Albrecht Husserl (8. huhtikuuta 1859 Proßnitz – 26. huhtikuuta 1938 Freiburg im Breisgau) oli saksalainen filosofi ja fenomenologian perustaja. Hänen filosofiansa asettui aikansa positivismia vastaan ja pyrki osoittamaan, että jokaisen objektin ja objektiiviseksi ajatellun tason takaa löytyy subjektiivinen aktiviteetti. Fenomenologian lisäksi Husserl tunnetaan psykologismin kritiikistään.
xxx/ellauri337.html on line 510: Mooseksen kirjan mukaan heprealaiset asuivat Egyptissä patriarkka Jaakobin ja hänen poikansa Joosefin ajoista lähtien. Mutta molempien kuollessa farao teki heidät orjiksi heidän vaurautensa ja suuren lukumääränsä pelossa ja määräsi vastasyntyneet urokset tapettaviksi. Faaraon tytär pelasti Mooseksen, joka kasvatti hänet omakseen.
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 47: Gabista ei ole oikeastaan omaa paasausta. Albumissa 116 sitä vähän sivutaan pöljän perulaisen Lösän yhteydessä, joka löi Gabilta nenän poskelle. Nyt löytyi vaihtorottahyllystä Gabin myöhäistuotantoa edustava vihkonen. Sen mottona on lainaus rivolta nobelistikolleegalta Kawabata Yasunarilta, joka neuvoo ettei nukkuvan geishan suuhun sovi sujauttaa kynnetöntä sormea, se on mautonta.
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 65: Gabriel José de la Concordia García Márquez oli kolumbialainen kirjailija, novellikirjailija, käsikirjoittaja ja toimittaja. García Márquezia, joka tunnettiin kotimaassaan "Gabona", pidettiin yhtenä 1900-luvun merkittävimmistä kirjailijoista. Vuonna 1982 hänelle myönnettiin Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinto. Samana vuonna New Yorker hylkäsi Gabin tarjoaman novellin. Lukijat eivät tykkäisi sen lopusta. Olikohan se tämä? Hyviä huomioita, lähtökohta on mielenkiintoinen ja teksti kauniisti kirjoitettu, mutta tarina on ohut ja loppu hieman pettymys. Ei yhtään penetraatiota.
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 236: Hemingway's preoccupation with violence dominated his life. Tässä se nähtiin taas. He won the Nobel prize of literature in 1945. Figures. Big game hunting, deep sea fishing, military exploits, physical prowess, heavy boozing. Ilmiselvä homo.Tästä aiheesta on paljon paasausta ennestäänkin. Old man and the Seagram.
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 245: 2. In A Farewell to Arms there is this celebrated passage. "There were many words that you could not stand to hear and finally only the names of places had dignity. Certain numbers were the same way and certain dates and these with the names of the places were all you could say and have them mean anything. Abstract words such as glory, honor, courage, or hallow were obscene beside the concrete names of villages, the numbers of roads, the names of rivers, the numbers of regiments and the dates."
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 261: Mandel takes a brief reference to an anticlerical novel made by one of the characters in A Farewell to Arms and explores the historical and ideological basis for its presence in the novel. In a novel where the Priest is such an important figure, the discussion of the Catholic Church and the way that soldiers would regard religion becomes an important thematic examination. Mandel traces her exploration of this topic, the translation of this obscure novel, and her subsequent revelations, in a way that makes this chapter a study in scholarship and the excavation of an arcane reference.
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 265: Professor Gianfranca Balestra of the Università Cattolica del Sacro Cuore (Milan) not only located the book but took the extraordinary trouble of having the whole thing xeroxed for me. Finally, in late 1995, I had the 288 pages of Il maiale nero: Rivelazioni e documenti in my hands. But what does it say? It's all in Italian! The puzzle was partially solved by Enzo Michelangeli: “Il Maiale Nero” is a novel written by Umberto Notari in the early 20th Century. His most famous book is the first he published in 1904, “Quelle signore” (“Those ladies”), about the world of prostitution: it earned him a prosecution for obscenity resulting in a fine, but the book was reprinted and by 1920 had sold more than half million copies.
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 271: In 1907, Notari (1878–1950) was already a best-selling journalist, polemicist, biographer, novelist, and dramatist. All told, he would write more than thirty books, in six of which he examines the position of women in society, most notably with a 1903 exegesis of prostitution in high and low places called Signore sole: Interviste con le più belle e le più celebri artiste (Single women: Interviews with the most beautiful and famous artists) that sold 21,000 copies and was denounced as immoral and obscene and taken to court, which inevitably increased its readership. It was followed by Quelle signore: Scene di una grande città moderna (Those women: Scenes of a great modern city; ca. 1904), which was set in a house of prostitution and whose main character, Ellere, was recognizably based on Notari’s good friend Filippo Tommaso Marinetti (1876–1944), an Egyptian-born Italian poet, editor, firebrand, and founder of the Futurist movement.
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 273: Notari’s novel sold 80,000 copies in six months and sales only increased when it was accused of offending public morality; it and its author were acquitted, with Marinetti serving as witness for the defense. “It was Notari’s good fortune,” one scholar writes, “to be accused of obscenity by a court in Parma.... Marinetti, who attended and clearly relished the trial, wrote a detailed account of it for Parisian readers... and then translated his account into Italian, appending a brief, self-congratulatory introduction” (Adamson 97). Marinetti bragged that the trial “gave an extraordinary boost to the book’s sales such that, today, one finds it in all the elegant parlors, in all the bedrooms, under the virginal bedlinens of all the convent-school girls and inside the prayer benches of all the new brides” (qtd. in Adamson 97–98). Notari quickly produced a sequel, Femmina: Scene di una grande capitale (1906), which became a best seller before it too was seized and banned. Notari proudly listed these three books’ sales figures and legal histories in the front matter of his next book, The Black Pig (1907).
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 279: The Black Pig’s front matter also mentions two earlier publications that reveal Notari’s anticlerical bias: Carducci Intimo (1903), a biography of Giosuè Carducci (1835–1907), the Italian poet, professor, classicist, translator, freethinker, fierce opponent of the Catholic Church, and author of “Hymn to Satan,” who would be awarded the 1906 Nobel Prize in Literature; and Il Papa alla porta! Inchiesta e conclusioni per l’abolizione del Papato (Throw the Pope out! An inquest and conclusions for the abolition of the Papacy), aimed at the recently elected and very conservative Pope Pius X. Notari’s anticlericalism is also visible in his dedication of The Black Pig: “A due invitti innovatori di un Italia pagana e virile, dedico questo libro di demolizione di una Italia chiercuta e bazzotta” (To two indomitable revivers of a pagan and virile Italy, I dedicate this book aimed at the destruction of a tonsured and limp Italy).
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 290: Giosuè Carducci (27. heinäkuuta 1835 – 16. helmikuuta 1907) oli italialainen runoilija ja prosaisti, joka sai Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon vuonna 1906. Häntä pidetään modernin Italian epävirallisena kansallisrunoilijana. Hän toimi myös opettajana ja kääntäjänä ja käänsi Vergiliuksen teoksia ja osia Iliaasta italiaksi. Carducci toimi aktiivisesti myös kulttuuripolitiikassa ja oli muun muassa koulutusta ja kulttuuririentoja järjestävän Società Dante Alighierin perustajajäsen. Hänen poliittiset mielipiteensä olivat ailahtelevaisia, ja hän on kirjoittanut yhtä tulisieluisia tekstejä tasavallan puolesta kuin sitä vastaan. Hän ei pitänyt paavilaisuudesta. Hänet äänestettiin Senaattiin vuonna 1890.
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 374: In the appendix, each location is carefully catalogued with notes as to placement, location of the sundial, and maker(s) if known. McLemore’s observation that they’re “all sad like that” is hard to argue with: there are a lot of ways to say “remember you will die,” “time is fleeting,” and “seize the day,” and many of them are in Gatty’s book. The motto that S-Town host Brian Reed1 finds in a mission garden, knowing to look for it because John told him to, does not appear there, but does in another: “Nil boni hodie diam perdidi: I did nothing good today — the day is lost.”
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 387: [Nobis] pereunt et imputantur. ([The hours] are consumed and will be charged [to our] account)
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 411: Viime aikoina on nautittu joka ilta monta tuntia länkkäriä väkivaltaviihdettä. Kaikki haluavat tuliaseita. Meganin luupää Tommylla on iso. Se hinkkaa asettaan yxinäisenä ja mustasukkaisena pöydän ääressä kun Megan heilastelee sitä selkeästi fixumpaa virologia. (Oikeasti kaveri on koulut keskenjättänyt ohiolaisen hizarin poika.) Ylifixut sarjamurhaajat jekuttavat toistuvasti ylifixuja skoudeja. Hän on jättänyt taas vihjeen. Olemme paikantaneet hänet hylättyyn teollisuuskiinteistöön. Pienet taskulamput mukaan ja autoihin! Poliisi! Drop the gun! BLAM! Oho hän kuoli. Nyt tuli poliisille paha mieli. Vinosuinen naurettavan ylipainoinen Mr. Jeeves parantaa Jerry Cottonin pahan omantunnon. Lipesikö roisto kädestä vai annoitko sen pudota? Mixi ammuit klovnia? Mixi teit sen? Se on rikki nyt. En tiedä BUAAAH. Tuo kuulostaa paremmalta. Rakenna mulle grilli ja käristä kilon pala pihviä niin saat terveen paperit. These babies cost fifty bucks a pop. Olikohan ne Jeffersonianin rodesta? Yxinjäänyt isä jonka tytön (aina "My baby") raiskasi nakumiljonääri, hullu saarnaaja ja söi kumialligaattori, murti suuta murti päätä murti mustoa haventa ennenkuin kävi ampumassa oletetun pahantekijän. I'm sorry for your loss. Mixi anglosaxit aina virnuilee kyynelten lävize? Typerä maneeri. Onxe urheaa? Urhea kuolee 2000 kuolemaa muttei näytä sitä, sanoi Ernest Hemingway. Että jenkeissä on sairas meininki. Mutta kyllä pikku Suomi tulee perästä. Elintasokuilun kasvaessa täältäkin alkaa löytyä lasten ja muiden ruumiinosien myymälöitä ja roistoilulle sopivia slummeja. Neekereistä ja suurialaisista matuista sopii aloitella. We've got the coolest jobs.
xxx/ellauri354.html on line 457: Robert Stone (novelist) in Outerbridge Reach (1992)
xxx/ellauri356.html on line 173: Pariisissa 60-luvulla hän ystävystyi Philippe Sollersin kanssa ja vieraili usein juutalais- homo- ja norssiporukoissa Robert Antelmen, Pierre Boulezin, Jean Genetin, Pierre Klossowskin, Francis Pongen ja Nathalie Sarrauten luona.
xxx/ellauri356.html on line 463: Nojautuen ranskalaiseen perinteeseen, joka kuhisee hirviömäisiä tyyppejä (esim. kirjailija Louis-Ferdinand Célineä ), ja hämmentäen aihetta, joka perustuu "likaan" (esim. keittiöpsykoanalyytikko Jacques Lacan), Julia Kristeva kehitti ajatuksen "abjekti" sellaisexi, jonka sosiaalinen järki hylkää kun se häiritsee yhteisöllistä konsensusta, joka tukee yhteiskuntajärjestystä. "Abjekti" esiintyy vastenmielisesti jossain objektin ja subjektin välissä, edustaen minän tabuelementtejä kuten esim. runkkuisia kyrpiä ja perseitä, jotka ovat tuskin seipäällä erotettavissa toisistaan. Kristeva väittää, että subjektiksi määritellyn – osaksi itseäsi – ja objektin – itsestäsi riippumattoman olemassa olevan – rajamailla on palasia, jotka on kerran luokiteltu osaksi itseään tai identiteettiä, mutta jotka on sittemmin hylätty – abjekteja. Kristevan abjection-käsitettä käytetään yleisesti analysoimaan suosittuja kulttuurisia kertomuksia kauhusta ja syrjivästä käyttäytymisestä, joka ilmenee naisvihana, homofobiana ja kansanmurhina. Kriittisessä teoriassa abjektio ("hylky/heittiömäisyys") on tila, jossa ollaan erossa normeista ja säännöistä, erityisesti yhteiskunnan ja moraalin tasolla. Termiä on tutkittu poststrukturalismissa sellaisena, joka luonnostaan häiritsee tavanomaista ranskalaista kermaperse identiteettiä ja kulttuurisia käsitteitä.
xxx/ellauri356.html on line 469: Psykopatologi Bruan Seu osoitti, kuinka tärkeää on yhdistää foucauldilaiset ajatukset itsevalvonnasta ja sijoittelusta keskusteluun psykodynaamisen teorian kanssa, jotta voidaan ymmärtää psykologisten vaikuttajien, kuten häpeän , täysi merkitys. Psykopatologioissa, kuten kehon dysmorfisessa häiriössä (BDD), toisen rooli – todellinen, kuviteltu tai kuviteltu – on keskeinen, ja häpeän paisuttama ambivalenssi kehosta on avain tähän dynamiikkaan. BDD-potilaat pitävät osaa kehostaan epämiellyttävänä tai ei-toivottavana, ja tätä uskoa pahentaa häpeä ja vaikutelma, että muut huomaavat oletetun fyysisen virheen ja näkevät sen negatiivisesti, mikä luo kierteen. Ajan myötä BDD:tä sairastava henkilö alkaa nähdä, että tämä ruumiinosa on hänestä erillään, – se on tyrmistynyt hylkiö. Abjektion tutkiminen on osoittautunut vihjailevaksi ja hyödylliseksi itse- ja kehovihan dynamiikan pohtimisessa. Tällä on mielenkiintoisia vaikutuksia tutkittaessa sellaisia häiriöitä, kuten eroahdistus, ylipaino, biologisesti keskittyneet fobiat ja posttraumaattinen stressihäiriö. Angelan mielestä kallo ilman pehmytosia on normista mutta päänahkapallo ilman kalloa pervoa. Mieti sitä.
xxx/ellauri356.html on line 488: 26. tammikuuta 1977, Sollers allekirjoitti Le Mondessa – hän plus noin viisikymmentä persoonaa – (erityisesti Jean-Paul Sartren, Roland Barthesin, Simone de Beauvoirin, Alain Robbe-Grillet'n, Françoise Doltin ja Jacques Derridan kanssa) "Avoimen kirjeen rikoslain tarkistuskomissiolle tiettyjen lakitekstien tarkistamiseksi, aikuiset ja alaikäiset", jossa vaaditaan, että "alaikäisten väärinkäyttöä" koskevat lain artiklat "kumotaan tai muutetaan perusteellisesti" siinä mielessä, että "lapsen ja nuoren oikeus tunnustetaan ylläpitää suhteita valitsemiinsa ihmisiin." Se oli vetoomus kolmen miehen puolesta, joita syytettiin 15-vuotiaiden alaikäisten sopimattomasta pahoinpitelystä ilman väkivaltaa. Tämän tekstin oli kirjoittanut Gabriel Matzneff, joka ei salaa makuaan pedofiliaa ja efebofiliaa kohtaan. Matzneff kerskui nussineensa useitakin alaikäisiä tyttöjä. Helmikuussa 2020 julkaistussa New York Timesin profiilissa valokuvassa Matzneff seisoo yksin veden äärellä Italiassa, näyttää masentuneelta, surullinen kalju mies Burberryn trenssitakissa. Ämmä Springora tuhosi muiston siitä, mitä hän muistaa olleen "kestävä ja upea rakkaustarina". Mutta voiko teini-ikäisellä tytöllä olla "upea rakkaustarina" yli kolme kertaa häntä ikäisemmän henkilön kanssa? Tämä on Consentin ytimessä oleva kysymys. Lukijat eivät epäile vastauksesta mitään. This manner willl be convenient for a man who wants to enjoy a woman, and can only get at her by force and against her will. (Perfumed Garden, p. 72.)
xxx/ellauri356.html on line 642: Yleensä enemmän musiikin kuin sanojen kanssa Daavid antoi meille ensimmäisen elämänmerkkinsä toiputtuaan koomasta tällä haikulla nimeltä Raamattu. Näen myös kirjoittamisen eloonjäämisen globalisoituneiden Internetin käyttäjien blogeissa ja muilla foorumeilla, jotka nykyään ottavat takaisin kulttuurisen monimuotoisuuden muiston ja ovat steriilin nostalgian ja säästötoimien poliittisen ylitarjouksen tulva vastaan. – he elävät kielen äärettömyydessä heidän uusi ja mittaamaton luovuus.
xxx/ellauri357.html on line 134: herself a prestigious job in a law firm.
xxx/ellauri357.html on line 139: corporate job she worked wasn’t the right ‘fit’ for her.
xxx/ellauri357.html on line 178: Plötinös vertaa Yhtä (se 1 paikka ilmeisesti) aurinkoon, josta virtaa valoa loputtomasti ilman että se vähenisi (mikä ei tosin nykyaikaisen tieteen mukaan pidä paikkaansa), ja peiliin, joka heijastaa objektista peilikuvan ilman että alkuperäinen objekti vähenisi. Paizi peilikuvan energialähde ei tule peilistä vaan ulkopuolelta. Ei kovin vakuuttavaa argumentointia hyvä Plötinös. Läpi näkyy mutta lämpimän pitää, mikä se on?
xxx/ellauri357.html on line 362: Ja kuinka me omistamme jumaluuden? Siinä, että jumaluus sisältyy älylliseen periaatteeseen ja Aito olemassaolo; ja olemme kolmanneksi järjestyksessä näiden kahden jälkeen, ikäänkuin pronssipallilla. Meidät muodostaa korkeimman, jakamattoman sielun liitto - luemme - ja se sielu, joka on jaettu [elävien] ruumiiden kesken. Sillä huomaa, me väistämättä ajattele Sielua, vaikka se onkin jakamaton Kaikessa, olevan läsnä jaossa olevat ruumiit: sikäli kuin kaikki ruumiit ovat eläviä, sielua on jokaiselle erilliselle materiaalimassalle; tai pikemminkin se näkyy olevan läsnä kehoissa sillä tosiasialla, että se loistaa niihin: se tekee he eivät ole eläviä olentoja sulautumalla ruumiiseen vaan luovuttamalla, ilman mikä tahansa muutos itsessään, kuvia tai samankaltaisuuksia itsestään, kuten yhdestä kasvosta selfie monilla peileillä tai mobiileilla.
xxx/ellauri357.html on line 424: The ancient poets animated all sensible objects with Gods or Geniuses, calling them by the names and adorning them with properties of woods, rivers, mountains, lakes, cities, nations, and whatever their enlarged and numerous senses could perceive. And particularly they studied the Genius of each city and country, placing it under its mental deity. Till a system was formed, which some took advantage of and enslaved the vulgar by attempting to realize or abstract the mental deities from their objects. Thus began Priesthood. Priests are like worms, they shit on the nicest leaves. Choosing forms of worship from poetic tales. And at length they pronounced that the Gods had ordered such things. Thus men forgot that all deities reside in the human breast.
xxx/ellauri357.html on line 439: Percy Bysshe Shelley ( / b ɪ ʃ / ⓘ BISH ;4. elokuuta 1792 – 8. heinäkuuta 1822) oli brittiläinen kirjailija, jota pidetään yhtenä suurimmistaenglantilaisista romanttisista runoilijoista. Runoudessaan sekä poliittisissa ja sosiaalisissa näkemyksissään radikaali Shelley ei saavuttanut mainetta elämänsä aikana, mutta tunnustus hänen saavutuksistaan runoudessa kasvoi tasaisesti hänen kuolemansa jälkeen, ja hänestä tuli tärkeä vaikuttaja seuraavien sukupolvien runoilijoille, mukaan lukien Robert Browning, Algernon Charles Swinburne, Thomas Hardy ja WB Yeats. Amerikkalainen kirjallisuuskriitikko, rasvainen Harold Bloom kuvailee häntä "erinomaiseksi käsityöihmiseksi, lyyriseksi runoilijaksi ilman kilpailijaa ja varmasti yhdeksi kehittyneimmistä skeptisistä älyistä, joka on koskaan kirjoittanut runon."
xxx/ellauri358.html on line 47: tuli apukamera. Hänen tavaramerkkinsä chiaroscuro, sivuvalaistu tyyli sai alkunsa vahingossa: kuvattaessa lyhytelokuvaa The Life and Death of 9413: a Hollywood Extra (1928), toinen kahdesta saatavilla olevasta 400 W:n polttimosta paloi, jolloin valaistukseen jäi vain yksi lamppu. Juuri ennen kuolemaansa hän keskittyi "äärimmäisen tarkennuksen" objektiiviin tehdäkseen lähellä ja kaukana olevat kohteet yhtä erotettavixi. Toland kuoli unissaan Los Angelesissa Kaliforniassa 28. syyskuuta 1948 sepelvaltimotromboosiin 44 -vuotiaana. Hänet haudataan Hollywood Forever -hautausmaalle Hollywoodissa Kaliforniassa.
xxx/ellauri358.html on line 186: 1100-luvun Oxitanian pikkukinkut oli EU-typpisiä länkkäreitä eikä pohjois-Ranskan feodaaliherroja. Virkeitä pikku hobittioligarkkeja eikä Mordorin putinisteja. Kauppiaita ja pienyrittäjiä. Siellä sai n. 20 halkiohaaraakin 400 äijän ohella vetää masturbaduurilauluja. 4000sta viisusta oli ehkä parikymmentä naisten kynästä. Chansoneihin kyllästyneet kyläläiset sitoivat trubadurixin puuhun suukapuloituna.
xxx/ellauri358.html on line 289: Taloudellinen epätasa-arvo on lisääntynyt räjähdysmäisesti globaalissa mittakaavassa, ja varallisuuserojen kasvu varsinkin länsimaissa on ollut valtavaa viimeisen parinkymmenen vuoden aikana.
xxx/ellauri361.html on line 208: Sieltä hän peukalovärssyinä löytää itselleen vastaukset kaikkiin kiusallisiin kysymyksiin. Tolstoin evankelisen käsityksen mukaan "ylösnousemus", это "rakkauden työkalun nousu ruumiin haudasta". Ylösnousemuksen julkaiseminen johti siihen, että Pyhä synodi erotti Tolstoin Venäjän ortodoksisesta kirkosta vuonna 1901. Asialla oli takuulla kaikkein pyhimmän synodin Ober-syyttäjä Konstantin Pobedonostsev, jonka karikatyyrinä seikkailee yksi kirjan hahmoista, Toporov (Kirves).
xxx/ellauri363.html on line 33: ROTU JA ENNAKKOLUULO
xxx/ellauri363.html on line 54: Nuoret metrosexuaalit miehet eivät kilpaile autoilla eikä taloilla vaan ulkonäöllä. Ei ylläri, sillä koppelot työllistyvät paremmin ja voivat plokata mieleisensä mezokukon. Mikkihiiret homofobiaa tunne ei, hiuli hei. Valkaistuja kääriäisiä philadelphialaisilla nyhtösämpylöillä olkaa hyvät.
xxx/ellauri363.html on line 103: Vaikka hän tunnisti kuvista ainakin (pääasiassa myöhemmän) Wittgensteinin, Donald Davidsonin Alasdair McIntyren, Ronald Dworkinin, Robert Brandom, John McDowellin ja erityisesti "herkutteleva herra" Richard Rortyn, Gadamer on ehkä vähemmän tunnettu, ja varmasti vähemmän arvostettu englanninkielisissä filosofisissa piireissä kuin nämä hänen aikalaisensa. Mutta hän saavutti tavattoman kunnioituxen Länsi-Saxassa.
xxx/ellauri363.html on line 140: oblom_ja_Erland_Sihvonen_Kiinassa_lores.jpeg" />
xxx/ellauri363.html on line 569: luonnontieteistä lainatuilta täsmällisyyden ja objektiivisuuden vaateista. Samalla he
xxx/ellauri363.html on line 667: Hänestä tuli johtava angloamerikkalaisen oikeusfilosofian teoreetikko ja porvarillinen radikaali, jonka ideat vaikuttivat hyvinvointipolitiikan kehitykseen. Hän kannatti yksilön ja taloudellisia vapauksia, kirkon ja valtion erottamista, sananvapautta, naisten yhtäläisiä oikeuksia, oikeutta avioeroon ja (julkaisemattomassa esseessä) homoseksuaalisten tekojen dekriminalisointia. Hän vaati orjuuden, kuolemanrangaistuksen ja fyysisen rangaistuksen, mukaan lukien lasten, poistamista. Hänestä on tullut myös varhainen eläinten oikeuksien puolustaja. Vaikka hän kannatti vahvasti yksilöiden laillisten oikeuksien laajentamista, hän vastusti ajatusta luonnonlaeista ja luonnollisista oikeuksista (joita molempia pidetään "jumalaisina" tai "Jumalan antamina"). alkuperä), kutsuen niitä "hölynpölyksi paalujen päällä". Bentham kritisoi myös terävästi juridisia fiktioita (a family of hypothetical figures in anglo-saxon law including: the "right-thinking member of society", the "officious bystander", the "reasonable parent", the "reasonable landlord", the "fair-minded and informed observer", the "person having ordinary skill in the art" in patent law, and stretching back to Roman jurists, the figure of the bonus pater familias, all used to define legal standards).
xxx/ellauri363.html on line 671: Jerry keskittyi rahatalouden kasvuun keinona täystyöllisyyden luomisessa. Hän oli myös tietoinen pakkosäästämisen, kulutushalukkuuden, säästämis-sijoitussuhteen ja muiden "nykyaikaisen" tulo- ja työllisyysanalyysin sisällön muodostavista asioista. Hänen rahanäkemyksensä oli lähellä hänen utilitaristisen päätöksenteon mallissaan käytettyjä peruskäsitteitä. Hänen töitään pidetään "modernin hyvinvointitalouden" (anglosaxinen talousliberalismi) varhaisena edeltäjänä. Esimerkiksi 1780-luvulla Bentham piti kirjeenvaihtoa ikääntyvän Adam Smithin kanssa epäonnistuneena yrityksenä saada Smithin vakuuttuneeksi siitä, että korkojen pitäisi antaa kellua vapaasti. Chicagon jutku talousnobelisti Milton Friedman taputti Jerrylle karvakäsiään.
xxx/ellauri363.html on line 702: Ohjaan, että näin valmistettu ruumis siirretään toimeenpanijalleni. Hän saa luurangon pukeutumaan johonkin mustaan pukuun, jota toisinaan käytän. Hän ottaa näin puetun ruumiin sekä tuolin ja henkilökunnan, jotka olen kantanut myöhempinä vuosinani, ja koko laitteen säilyttämistä varten hän valmistelee sopivan laatikon tai kotelon ja kaivertaa siihen. näkyvällä kirjaimella siihen kiinnitettävään laattaan ja myös lasikaapin tarroihin, joihin kehoni pehmeiden osien valmisteet on sisällytettävä,... nimeni pitkälti kirjaimilla ob: ja sen jälkeen päivä minun kuolemastani.
xxx/ellauri363.html on line 742: Hay (gay communist Brit), Laurence Michael Dillon (born to English nobility), Oscard Wilde (British sodomist),
xxx/ellauri363.html on line 781: Vuonna 1971 Leo Kofler julkaisi kirjan nimeltä Technologische Rationalität im Spätkapitalismus (Teknologinen rationaalisuus vuonna 1968). Claus Offe julkaisi esseensä "Spätkapitalismus – Versuch einer Begriffsbestimmung" (Myöhäinen kapitalismi – yritys käsitteelliseen määritelmään) vuonna 1972. Vuonna 1973 Jürgen Habermas vihdoin julkaisi Legitimationsprobleme im Spätkapitalismus (Legitimationsprobleme im Spätkapitalismus). Vuonna 1975 Ernest Mandel julkaisi väitöskirjansa Late Capitalism englanniksi New Left Booksissa. Myös Herbert Marcuse hyväksyi termin.
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 207: Men han har gjort flera fel i sitt jobb. Det säger experten Runar Viksten. Han har gjort en undersökning.
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 211: De träffades också utanför jobbet. De kände varandra. Dom knullade varandra mycket ofta. Samtidigt tog Mats Löfving flera beslut om hennes jobb.
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 218: Experten tycker att Mats Löfving kanske måste sluta på sitt jobb.
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 219: Mats Löfving tycker att det är jobbigt att få höra kritiken. Det skriver han till nyhetsbyrån TT.
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 223: Mats Löfving var länge en av de viktigaste cheferna för poliserna i Sverige. På sitt senaste jobb gjorde han fel. Det visade en undersökning om hans jobb. Undersökningen kom i onsdags.
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 229: Undersökningen om Mats Löfvings jobb visade bland annat att han bestämt att en polis skulle få ha ett vapen. Han höjde också hennes lön. Han förlängde hennes vakans och gav henne lov att läsa romaner på jobbet.
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 231: Det var fel att Mats Löfving bestämde det eftersom han och polisen också träffade och knullade varandra utanför jobbet. Det tycker experten som gjorde undersökningen.
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 233: Mats Löfving hade jobbat länge som polis. Han har haft flera viktiga jobb som chef för poliserna i Sverige. Mats Löfving blev 61 år gammal. Stackars Mats.
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 238: Hon är den första kvinnan som har det jobbet. - Att säga ja till jobbet är ett av de svåraste besluten jag har tagit, säger Petra Lundh. Det nästan blev nej varje gång jag försökte. Men till sist grejade jag det.
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 240: Just nu jobbar hon i domstolen hovrätten. Hon har aldrig jobbat som polis. Men hon har jobbat i domstolar i 35 år. Där har hon jobbat med många olika brott.
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 242: Petra Lundh börjar sitt nya jobb den 1 december. Hon ska ha jobbet i sex år till att börja med. – Mycket hos poliserna fungerar bra, tex kukarna. Men det finns också mycket som behöver bli bättre, säger Petra Lundh. Gamla käringar som jag är tryggare än unga tjejer. Dessutom är hon inget arbetsbi.
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 243: – Jag jobbar i princip aldrig på helgerna och brukar gå hem i tid. Vad bra Petra!
xxx/ellauri366.html on line 460: Cobras flying in the sun,
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 283: Edmée de Mauprat, quant à elle, est une jeune femme noble et vertueuse. Son personnage est empreint de douceur et de détermination, faisant d’elle un personnage féminin fort et inspirant. Leurs histoires entrelacées de passion et de rédemption nous tiennent en haleine, nous invitant à réfléchir sur la nature humaine et sur la possibilité de changer et de se racheter. Lunastusta kehiin taas. Vizi moraali on yhtä kaupanhierontaa.
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 341: Nestorin kronikan mukaan Vladimir Pyhän vallanperimyskamppailuissa Borisin ja Glebin surmautti heidän velipuolensa Svjatopolk Kurja. Boris löydettiin puukotettuna teltastaan ja vietiin vielä elossa Kiovaan, mutta varjagit päästivät hänet peitseniskulla kärsimyksistään. Kun Gleb oli matkalla Kiovaan kuolevan isänsä luo, hänen kurkkunsa puolestaan katkaisi keittöveitsellä hänen oma kokkinsa. Nobody beats me in my kitchen.
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 516: Les cieux n’ont point d’objets si beaux :
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 526: Soyez l’objet de mes hommages,
xxx/ellauri376.html on line 643: N’est qu’un noble et vaste bordel.
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 119: Analyysi. On the most superficial level, Heart of Darkness can be understood through its semiautobiographical relationship to Conrad’s real life. Much like his protagonist Marlow, Conrad’s career as a merchant marine also took him up the Congo River. And much like Marlow, Conrad was profoundly affected by the human depravity he witnessed on his boat tour of European colonialism in Africa.
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 123: One of the most resoundingly Modernist elements of Conrad’s work lies in this kind of early post-structuralist treatment of language—his insistence on the inherent inability of words to express the real, in all of its horrific truth. Marlow’s journey is full of encounters with things that are “unspeakable,” with words that are uninterpretable, and with a world that is eminently “inscrutable.” In this way, language fails time and time again to do what it is meant to do—to communicate. It’s a phenomenon best summed up when Marlow tells his audience that “it is impossible to convey the life-sensation of any given epoch of one’s existence—that which makes its truth, its meaning—its subtle and penetrating essence… We live, as we dream—alone.” Kurtz—as “eloquent” as he may be—can’t even adequately communicate the terrifying darkness he observed around him.“The horror! The horror!” is all he can say. Some critics have surmised that part of Heart of Darkness’s mass appeal comes from this ambiguity of language—from the free rein it gives its readers to interpret. Others posit this as a great weakness of the text, viewing Conrad’s inability to name things as an unseemly quality in a writer who’s supposed to be one of the greats. Perhaps this is itself a testament to the Heart of Darkness’s breadth of interpretability.
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 133: Character Analysis The Intended. Kurtz's fiancée is marked — like the Harlequin — by her absolute devotion to Kurtz. When Marlow visits her after his return from Africa, he finds that she has been dressed in mourning for more than a year and still yearns for information about how her love spent his last days. However, she is actually devoted to an image of Kurtz instead of the man himself: She praises Kurtz's "words" and "example," assuming that these are filled with the nobility of purpose with which Kurtz began his career with the Company. Her devotion is so absolute that Marlow cannot bear to tell her Kurtz's real last words ("The horror! The horror!") and must instead tell her a lie ("The whore! The whore!") that strengthens her already false impression of Kurtz. On a symbolic level, the Intended is like many Europeans, who wish to believe in the greatness of men like Kurtz without considering the more "dark" and hidden parts of their characters. Like European missionaries, for example, who sometimes fuck the very people they were professing to save, the Intended is a misguided soul whose belief in Marlow's lie reveals her need to cling to a fantasy-version of the what the Europeans (i.e., the Company) are doing in Africa.
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 135: obs/redirect/eyJfcmFpbHMiOnsibWVzc2FnZSI6IkJBaHBBbVVsIiwiZXhwIjpudWxsLCJwdXIiOiJibG9iX2lkIn19--99e6ccba505830d0d20148eb6d5bf8252a87b867/36f55d2725ca4a67a0ad160c4357719e.ashx" />
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 163: and "the Bob Dylan of our age". Swift on tukenut monia brändejä ja yrityksiä, hän on lanseerannut vaatepuita Paul ja Stella McCartneyn kanssa, suunnitellut terveisiä Amerikasta -kortteja ja Jakke Pacific -nukkeja, julkaissut useita tuoksuja Elizabeth Ardenin isokainalosta ja allekirjoittanut monivuotiset sopimukset AT&T:n ja Pääoma Ykkösen kanssa. Hän oli National Hockey Leaguen Nashville Predatorsin ja Sony Cyber-threat -digitaalikameroiden trollaaja, ja hänestä tuli New York Cityn kansainvälinen lähettiläs vuonna 2014 ja levykauppapäivätapahtuma vuonna 2022.
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 192: Tulpa: Brony term for imaginary friend. Or a vein on the penis that has become enlarged and/or darkened so that it has become obvious and unnatural. "I whip out my dick and put it in her vagoo for my Applejack tulpa!" Ojennna tädillesi tulppaani. Sinunko tulppaasi?
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 237: Uaxaclajuun Ubʼaah Kʼawiil (tunnetaan myös nimellä "Kahdeksastoista kani"), oli 13. ajaw eli voimakkaan mayavaltion hallitsija, joka liittyy Cobánin paikkaan nykyaikaisessa Hondurasissa (sen klassinen maya-nimi oli luultavasti Oxwitik) . Hän hallitsi 2. tammikuuta 695-3. toukokuuta 738.
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 250: The Mass Effect series has been the subject of several major video game controversies. A cutscene from the first Mass Effect, which contains depictions of partial nudity and total sexual activity, was accused by neoconservative media outlets of being obscene content in late 2007. Controversy over the cutscene, especially one version which depicts a potent intimate scene between Liara T'Soni and a female Commander Shepard, attracted at least one instance of government scrutiny, which led to the game being briefly banned in Singapore. The controversy prompted an intervention from BioWare management into the development of Mass Effect 2 to remove planned same sex romantic content for companion characters Taylor Wift and Applejack.
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 270: thing on your hand. bob: "hey did you feel my skinless pinky?" joe: "no what the
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 271: fuck bob". Tarkoittaa myös palefacea, rotanpoikasta tai vaaleanpunaista ripsipiirakkaa: two in the pinky one in the stinky.
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 322: Courtney Love on kade miljardöörimmälle Taylor Wiftille. Ei Wift ole mitenkään tärkeä. Nina Simone oli etevämpi, siitä ei voi olla kuin yhtä mieltä. Sibelius wiftasi Kämpin yläkerrassa. Kekähän sille siellä twerkkas persettä. Ei Aino ainakaan, ei liioin Love eikä Wift. Tokko edes Nina Simone. Courtney ehkä nirhasi Kurt Cobainin. Lopun alku käynnistyi kun Cobain katosi vieroitusklinikalta maaliskuussa 1994. Courtney Love palkkasi yksityisetsivät paikantamaan miehen. Courtney teki katoamisilmoituksen Kurtin äidin nimellä, jossa varoiteltiin muusikon olevan itsetuhoinen. Kukaan ei löytänyt Cobainia. Ennustettavissa ollut toteutui 5. huhtikuuta 1994: Cobainin verestä löydettiin kolminkertainen yliannos heroiinia. Hän oli myös väitetysti ampunut itseään haulikolla. Jostain syystä haulikosta ei löydetty Cobainin sormenjälkiä. Hänet löysi hälytysjärjestelmän asentaja kahden ja puolen päivän päästä ampumisesta. Asentaja huomasi lasiruudun läpi paitaan, farkkuihin ja kenkiin pukeutuneen ruumiin huoneessa, jonka ikkunassa oli kyltti, jossa luki "Sovun valtakunta". Kurt Cobain makasi selällään lattialla. Kurt oli jättänyt myös itsemurhaviestin, jonka hän oli omistanut lapsuuden mielikuvitusystävälleen Boddahille. Paperissa oli pätkä Neil Youngin kappaleesta "My My, Hey Hey (Out Of The Blue)". Cobain olisi kirjoittanut lappuun "It's better to burn out than to fade away" (suom. "On parempi palaa loppuun kuin feidata").
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 324: Kuolemasta raportoitiin ympäri maailmaa, ja Suomessakin esimerkiksi Suosikki-lehti ruoti Cobainin elämää tämän lapsuudesta saakka. Joidenkin epäilysten mukaan Courtney Love yritti järjestää Kurt Cobainin murhan palkkaamalla palkkamurhaajan. Dokumentissa Kurt & Courtney Eldon Hoke -niminen mies väitti Courtney Loven yrittäneen palkata hänet murhaamaan Cobainin, mutta hän kieltäytyi tehtävästä, koska ei uskonut Courtneyn olevan tosissaan. On myös epäilty Hoken keksineen koko jutun saadakseen julkisuutta. Dokumentissa kuitenkin kerrotaan Hoken läpäisseen valheenpaljastustestit. Dokumentissa kerrotaan myös, että Hoke kuoli epäselvissä olosuhteissa jäätyään junan alle kaksi kuukautta dokumentin teon jälkeen.
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 326: Vieläkään ei ole täysin varmaa tietoa Cobainin kuolemasta. Monien Cobainin fanien mielestä kuoleman syyn pitäisi olla tuntematon eikä itsemurha. Monet uskolliset fanit taistelevat yhä monen vuoden jälkeen saadakseen Cobainin kuolemantapauksen uudelleen käsittelyyn. Monien mielestä myös Cobainin itsemurhakirje on todellisuudessa hänen synninpäästönsä halusta jättää Nirvana. On myös spekuloitu itsemurhakirjeen viimeisten rivien olevan jonkun muun kirjoittamaa.
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 327: Yleisimmät spekulaatiot aiheesta osoittavat Cobainin vaimoon Courtney Loveen. Cobainin myös huhuttiin suunnitelleen eroavansa Lovesta. Yksi Cobainin vaimoon Courtneyyn osoitettu väite on myös hänen taskustaan löydetty lappu, johon hän oli harjoitellut Kurtin käsialaa. Kuka muuten oli se jonkun aiemman albumin oikeinkin panettava blondi typy Los Angelesista? Kyllä se oli Courtney Love pienenä.
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 330: Neil Young oli ilkeän näköinen. Nyttemmin se on obeesi virnistelijä. Aika narsistiset sanat tässä Kurtin loppuviestissä.
xxx/ellauri379.html on line 334: Hans Joachim Morgenthau (* 17. Februar 1904 in Coburg, Oberfranken; † 19. Juli 1980 in New York) war ein deutschamerikanischer Politikwissenschaftler und Jurist jüdischer Abstammung. Oli siinäkin aivan vimmattu paskiainen. Vaikea löytää ärhäkämpää termiittisekoitusta kuin saxalaissyntyinen juutalais-amerikkalainen poliittinen tipilintu. Hannu-Roope suunnitteli sodan jälkeen puolanmallista Saxan jakoa ja sen taannuttamista maatalousmaaxi. Eihän siinä mitään moittimista sinänsä jos sama olis tehty samantien anglosfäärille. Mutta ei. Oman valtion vallan maksimoiminen ja vieraan valtion rodeen nakkaaminen on Morgenthaun mukaan rationaalista ja myös hyveellistä, mikäli se perustuu hillittömään omanvoitonpyyntiin.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 87: – Venäläiset tietävät, että loppukeväästä ja alkukesästä Ukraina on kaikista heikoimmillaan. Mobilisaatiolait eivät ole ehtineet tuoda kevennystä miesongelmiin, ja muun muassa tsekkien ja virolaisten yllätyksellisesti ”löytämät” ammukset eivät ole ehtineet saapua rintamalle ainakaan massiivisessa määrin käyttöön. Välineellistä ihmistuontia Baltiasta on jo mietitty.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 134: Punktera: i vissa i Sverige numera knappast brukliga hasardspel (farao, biribi m. m.): spela (mot bankören), göra insatser; äv. med obj.: sätta pängar l. hålla på (ett visst kort l. nummer).
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 205: Fairbanks piti tätä elokuviensa suosikkina poikansa mukaan. Siinä on paljon samaa kuin Monty Pythonin skezissä Olympics for Upper-class Twits ja kikkailevassa Juha Koistisessa. Mielikuvituksellinen voimistelu sopi urheilutähdelle, jonka "kissanomaiset, näennäisen vaivaton" liikkeet olivat yhtä paljon tanssia kuin voimistelua. Yhdessä hänen aikaisemman Robin Hoodin (1922) kanssa elokuva merkitsi Fairbanksin muutosta nerokkaasta komediasta uraksi "swashbuckler" rooleissa. Elokuva, joka on vahva erikoistehosteissa (lentävä matto, taikaköysi ja pelottavat hirviöt) ja sisältää massiivisia arabialaistyylisiä lavasteita, osoittautui myös ponnahduslautaksi Anna May Wongille, joka esitti petollista mongolien orjaa. Sellaisia viirusilmät ovat.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 261: Dirlewanger vapautettiin ja palautettiin SS:n yleiseen reserviin hänen sodanaikaisen toverinsa ja paikallisen NSDAP-kaatotoverinsa Gottlob Bergerin henkilökohtaisen väliintulon jälkeen, joka oli myös Reichsführer-SS Heinrich Himmlerin pitkäaikainen henkilökohtainen ystävä ja josta oli tullut SS:n päällikkö. Päätoimisto (SS-Hauptamt, SS-HA). Frankfurtin yliopisto palautti myös hänen kunniatohtorin arvonsa.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 295: According to the Euro-Med Human Rights Monitor, Israel has dropped more than 25,000 tonnes of explosives on the Gaza Strip since October 7, equivalent to two nuclear bombs. In comparison, the Little Boy nuclear bomb dropped by the United States on Hiroshima during World War II yielded 15,000 tonnes of high explosives and destroyed everything within a one-mile (1.6km)
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 338: Vuonna 2013 Loganin raportointi vuoden 2012 Benghazin hyökkäyksestä Afghanistanissa aiheutti merkittävää kiistaa asiavirheiden vuoksi, ja se peruttiin, mikä johti potkuihin. The “60 Minutes” story broadcast October 27 cast doubt on whether the Obama administration sent all possible help to try to save Stevens and his three colleagues. The story was then cited by congressional Republicans who have demanded to know why a military rescue was not attempted. Barack Obama repi siitä pelihousunsa ja tuli puhelinlankoja pitkin CBS:n pääkonttoriin. Logan jätti CBS:n vuonna 2018.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 368: Aleksanteri Solženitsynin "Gulagin saaristo" salakuljetettiin Venäjältä - "PETTURI!" Näin virallinen neuvostolehdistö leimasi Nobel-palkitun kirjailijan, joka on Venäjän suurin kirjailija. Hänen rikoksensa oli kirjoittaa kirjoja, paljastaen elävästi painajaisen poliittisen vankilajärjestelmän, joka aikoinaan vaati hänet yhdeksi miljoonista uhreistaan ja joka vielä nytkin heittää pelon varjonsa koko venäläisen elämän yli.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 411: Elokuu 1914 (venäjäksi: Август четырнадцатого ) on Nobel-palkitun kirjailijan Aleksandr Solženitsynin venäläinen romaani keisarillisen Venäjän armeijan tappiosta Tannenbergin taistelussa Itä - Preussissa.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 427: The expanded version of Aleksandr I. Solzhenitsyn's ''August 1914'' -containing a new section on the assassination of a Russian prime minister by an anarchist Jew - has touched off a controversy as to whether the Nobel Prize winner and author of the ''Gulag Archipelago'' is anti-Semitic.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 429: As the man responsible for almost single-handedly informing the West of the horrors of the Soviet Gulag, Mr. Solzhenitsyn has long been the object of Soviet efforts to destroy his reputation. But the accusations of anti-Semitism come from such impeccably anti-Communist sources as Prof. Richard Pipes of Harvard, a Soviet specialist and former director of Eastern European and Soviet Affairs on President Reagan's National Security Council.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 456: obileMasterAt3x.jpg?quality=75&auto=webp&disable=upscale&width=1200" width="70%" />
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 473: Actually, Arabs, Brezhnevian soviets and modern Western conservatives have a great deal in common. They're all obsessed with a distant yet glorious past which they feel entitles them to respect merely for who they are, regardless of how little they've achieved recently. They have the same religious intolerance, the same contempt for the life of the mind. They all have the same vicious response when thwarted, and the same sense that they're losing the greater battle and are, willingly or not, on their way out the door.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 484: The presumed close U.S.-Israel relationship, thought to be operative at all levels, aggravates and complicates this penchant for secrecy in arab-U.S. military cooperation. Arabs believe that the most mundane details about them are somehow transmitted to the Mossad via a secret hotline.This explains why a U.S. advisor with Arab forces is likely to be asked early and often about his opinion of the "Palestine problem," then subjected to monologues on the presumed Jewish domination of the United States.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 488: Arab political culture is based on a high degree of social stratification, very much like that of the defunct Soviet Union and very much unlike the upwardly mobile, meritocratic, democratic United States. Change is unlikely to come until it occurs in the larger Arab political culture. Our own example suggests that the military can have a democratizing influence on the larger political culture, as officers bring the lessons of their training first into their professional environment, then into the larger society. Until Arab politics begin to change at fundamental levels, which involves chucking the rags and buying Coke, Arab armies, whatever the courage or proficiency of individual officers and men, are unlikely to acquire the range of qualities which modern fighting forces require for success on the battlefield.
xxx/ellauri380.html on line 492: Around 65,000 people have left their homes. Before October 2023, Hezbollah fighters would patrol in the open on the other side of the border fence, sometimes just metres from Israeli civilian homes. With the October 7th massacres foremost in everyone's minds, residents of Israel's north want guarantees that this situation will not return once the current round of fighting ceases. Some 100,000 Lebanese have left their own homes on the other side of the border. American diplomatic efforts to achieve some change in border arrangements are stymied. Hezbollah is the effective ruler of Lebanon, and apparently sees no reason for flexibility in this regard.
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 71: mick Mars (s. Robert Alan Deal, syntynyt 4. toukokuuta 1951, Terre Haute, Indiana, Yhdysvallat), 73v, sairaseläkkeellä.
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 196: Talous on vaan vähänen osa-alue selkoelämästä, sitä säätelevät pilotajunesti toteutuvat tapahtumat, jotka jäävät SM valvonnan ulkopuolelle. Jokaisella psyykkisellä limiöllä mohpa se näemmä vaikka kumkakin mieletön, on oma funksionismin faina, eumerkiksi unen, virhesuoritusten, poies pillusta lipsahdusten, psyykknesti sairasten tasan häiryneiden imaisujen jne. Kaikki nämä mitalityvet äro med, kun tutkijain onnistuu jumittaa ne oikealle paikalleen asianomasen yksilön kyhnyshizoriassa. Näin paukologia, joka shen memessa oli offlat jonkinlasta sivujen fysikkaa (sarvimytologiaa) tai epämäärää ja ракхнема орнa jostain insestisestä objektiivisesta hengesta, änkes ulos sivulukkoisten mossejen Tuomnemtieteiden piirongista.
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 201: Kolmas saari saarvatus, jobbon Freud ylts, oti toteamus othd tape yukapun, johon kuuluu myös hanen olamansa isom emom ja rampon välisest suhteesta (»Odipakomplekні». Томуцинат хуя! )
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 207: Seksuaaliekonomia on tutkimussuunta, joka useita vuosia sitten on hahmottunut ihmisen sukupuolielämän sosiologian yhteyteen soveltamalla funktionalistista näkemystä tälle alueelle. Se on jo päässyt lukuisiin uusin löydöksiin ja toteamuksiin ja siitä jaetaan nobelpalkintoja Norjassa. Sen lähtökohtina ovat seuraavat peruskäsitykset.
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 215: Kukin näistä löydöksistä (ja tässä olen maininnut vain niitä, jotka ovat meidän pääasheemme (shiitin) kannalta merkitsevimpiä) antoi jo pelkästään julkistumalla ankaran potkun taantumukselliselle moraalifilosofialle ja etenkin uskonnoliselle metafysikalle nämä kun julistivat, että moraaliset arvot ovat ikuisia, että maailmassa hallitsee objektiivinen henki, et pikkulapset ovat sukupoolisesti viattomia ja että sukupuofitominnot ovat hyväksyttävissä vain suvun jatkumiseksi. Päinvastoin, suvun jatkuminen on vain lutkutuxen ja coituxen sivuvaikutus, se on kuin Freudin suusyöpä sikaarien pureskelusta. Kuitenkaan nämä nerokkaat oivallukset eivät päässeet vaikuttamaan sinä määrim kuin niiden luonne olus edellyttänyt, sillä niille rakentuva prykoana byyttimen sosiologia samensi pääosan niiden edistyksellistä ja onnistui mullata vaan smáltook. Tässä sitä ei käy osoittaminen.
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 256: Varhaismoderni tutkija Robert Burton käyttää ilmaisua
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 257: teoksessaan Melankolian anatomia: Kirjoituksemme ovat niin monia ruokia, lukijamme vieraita, kirjamme kuin kauneus, se, mitä toinen ihailee, hylkää; niin olemme hyväksyttyjä, koska miesten mielikuvitukset ovat taipuvaisia. Pro captu lectoris habent sua fata libelli. Tämä artikkeli käsittelee Robert Burtonin kirjaa. Katso mieluummin Paradise Lostin albumi The Anatomy of Melancholy (Miltonin albumi).
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 280: 3 Seinfeld May be pedophile but apparently he ain't really gay. Seinfeld expressed support for Israel during the Israel–Hamas war, saying "I will always stand with Israel and the Jewish people." In 2024, Bloomberg declared Seinfeld a billionaire, with a net worth standing at more than $1 billion, thanks to various syndication deals his sitcom signed, with $465 million coming from those deals. Seinfeld is an automobile enthusiast and collector, and he owns a collection of about 150 cars, including a large Porsche collection. What a motherfucker.
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 288: Lamb, joka ystävystyi sellaisten kirjallisuuden huipputekijöiden kuin Samuel Taylor Coleridgen, Robert Southeyn, William ja Dorothy Wordsworthin ja William Hazlittin kanssa, oli Englannin suuren kirjallisuuspiirin keskipiste. Hänen tärkein elämäkerturinsa Sir Lucas ("Capital! Capital!) on kutsunut häntä "englanninkielisen kirjallisuuden rakastettavimmaksi hahmoksi".
xxx/ellauri385.html on line 355: Some portion of the glory, & rays oblique, kunniaa takas singahtaa vinoina säteinä
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 49: Vizi on maailma väärällään assorted nincompoops. En olisi arvannut nuorena että eteen tulee elämän aikana niin kreisejä tilanteita ja tyyppejä kuin esim Kride, Graham Wiltcock ja pimahtanut Harri Saarikoski tai Kouvolan tärähtänyt ryssän lehtori. Parempi oikeastaan olla muistelematta niitä enempää, tai tulee mieleen lisää nyrjähtäneitä sekobolzeja.
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 53: aasi, berserkki, dementti, dorka, hassahtanut, hassu, heikkomielinen, hourupäinen, hullu, hupsu, hurahtanut, häiriintynyt, hämy, hölmähtänyt, hölmö, höperö, hörhö, höynähtänyt, idari, idiootti, järjetön, järkipuoli, kaheli, kahjo, kaistapää, kaistapäinen, kajahtanut, kummallinen, mielenvikainen, mieletön, mielipuoli, mielisairas, nyrjähtänyt, omituinen, outo, pelle, poissa tolaltaan, pimahtanut, pimpo, puolihullu, psykopaatti, puupää, pähkähullu, pöhkö, pölkkypää, pöllähtänyt, pöllö, pönttö, pösilö, raivohullu, riivattu, sairasmielinen, sairas päästä, seonnut, seinähullu, sekaisin, seko, sekobolzi, sekopää, sekopäinen, sielullisesti häiriintynyt, suunniltaan, tampio, tasapainoton, tollo, tomppeli, torvi, turvelo, tyhmyri, tylsämielinen, typerys, typerä, tärähtänyt, vajakki, vinksahtanut, älykääpiö, ääliö, älytön, älyvapaa. 82
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 58: Jan Guilloun Arn oli Euroopan unioniin ja nyt Natoon liittyneen talousliberaalin orjavaltion Ruåzin auguuri. Anglosaxit munkit ja niiden burgunderit leikkikaverit (lekbröder) plus Siirin mutiaiset orjat Sot och Svarte rakentavat munkeille vesivessoja. Porukat on yhtä anakronistisia kuin Conncticut Yankee King Arthurin hovissa. Suomen raideleveys muutetaan eurooppalaisen kaposexi että Naton ammusjunat pääsee nopeammin sisämaahan. Muttei sentään itärajalle, rataverkko lopetetaan Kouvolaan, ja maantiet Haminaan. Mikäs siinä, siihenhän se itäraja sodan jälkeen varmaan palaakin, Ruåzinpyhtäälle. Jäämeren turha rata rakennetaan Ruåzin puolelle, Narvikista Kiirunaan. Olispa se ollut paikoillaan viime erässä niin saxalaiset olis päässeet jo silloin Narvikista Ruåziin rautaa hakemaan. Rautaa rajalle, Suomi hajalle. Harvaanasutusta Suomesta tulee taas ei kenenkään maa kuin säteilevästä Zernobylistä. Eläimet on mielissään. Niin mekin, sanon kuin Ensio Rislakki. Turvallisuus on tärkeintä, vahvistaa Ensio TISSSARRRRI. Siiri perrkele on 1100-luvulle siirretty Adam Smith, vitun talousliberaali kasvuprofeetta.
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 90: Hoblan ristikossa oli vihje "den falska" jonka vastaus oli Ran. Se tulee Esaias "pedofiili" Tegnerin runoelmasta, jonka se käänsi islantilaisen saagan saxannoxesta. Ran tarkoittaa siis näkkiä, molemmissa mielissä. Esasta on mulla aika ärhäkkä paasaus niinkin aikaisin kuin albumissa 49. Tässä tulee lisätietoa Frithjofin saagasta.
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 153: In 1955, he was considered for the Nobel Prize, the year in which it was awarded to his fellow countryman, Halldór Laxness. Varg i Veum tarkoittaa nykynorjalaiselle vaan sotkutukkaista defektiiviä ex-psykologidetektiiviä. Ei sitäkään jaxanut kazoa monta jaxoa.
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 181: Toisin kuin ensimmäinen ristiretki, uusi hanke houkutteli kuninkaallisia, kuten Eleanor of Aquitaine, Ranskan kuningatar; Thierry Alsace, Flanderin kreivi; Henry, tuleva samppanjan kreivi; Louisin veli Robert I Dreuxista; Alphonse I Toulouse; William II of Nevers; William de Warenne, Surreyn kolmas jaarli; Hugh VII Lusignanista, Yves II, Saucissonsin kreivi; ja monet muut aateliset ja piispat. Mutta tavallisilta ihmisiltä tuli vielä suurempi tuen osoitus. Bernard kirjoitti paaville muutama päivä myöhemmin: "Kaupungit ja linnat ovat nyt tyhjiä. Ei ole enää yhtä miestä seitsemään naiseen, ja kaikkialla on leskiä vielä eläville miehille."
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 203: The exposure of the IB in the magazine, which included headshots with names and social security numbers of some of the alleged staff published under the headline "Spies", led to a major domestic political scandal known as the "IB affair" (IB-affären). The activities ascribed to this secret outfit and its alleged ties to the Swedish Social Democratic Party were denied by Prime Minister Olof Palme, Defense Minister Sven Andersson and the Supreme Commander of the Swedish Armed Forces, General Stig Synnergren. However, later investigations by various journalists and by a public commissions, as well as autobiographies by the persons involved, have confirmed some of the activities described by Bratt and Guillou. In 2002, the public commission published a 3,000-page report where research about the IB affair was included.
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 213: Immediately following the September 11 attacks, Guillou caused controversy when he walked out of the Göteborg Book Fair in the midst of the three minutes of silence observed throughout Europe to honour the victims of the attacks. In an article in Aftonbladet, Guillou argued that the event was an act of hypocrisy, stating that "the U.S. is the great mass murderer of our time. The wars against Vietnam and its nearby countries alone claimed four million lives. Without a minute of silence in Sweden". He also criticised those who said that the attacks were "an attack on us all" by stating that the attacks were only "an attack on U.S. imperialism".
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 215: When the film Evil (2003), an adaptation of Guillou's autobiographical novel from 1981, was nominated for an Academy Award in 2003 Guillou was still listed as a terrorist by the US government because of the IB affair. Or was it the CIA affair? "Jamista" on täydentävä paasaus albumissa 301.
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 401: But for those obstinate questionings että izepäisesti kyselijäjyrkinä
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 462: Do take a sober colouring from an eye Mezänreunat, tienpientaret tummentuvat
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 474: “Those obstinate questionings Of sense and outward things, Fallings from us, vanishings; Blank misgivings of a Creature Moving about in worlds not realised, High instincts before which our mortal Nature Did tremble like a guilty thing surprised.”
xxx/ellauri387.html on line 490: "Who?" said Pococurante sharply; "that barbarian who writes a tedious commentary in ten books of rumbling verse, on the first chapter of Genesis? that slovenly imitator of the Greeks, who disfigures the creation, by making the Messiah take a pair of compasses from Heaven´s armory to plan the world; whereas Moses represented the Deity as producing the whole universe by his fiat? Can I think you have any esteem for a writer who has spoiled Tasso´s Hell and the Devil; who transforms Lucifer sometimes into a toad, and at others into a pygmy; who makes him say the same thing over again a hundred times; who metamorphoses him into a school-divine; and who, by an absurdly serious imitation of Ariosto´s comic invention of firearms, represents the devils and angels cannonading each other in Heaven? Neither I nor any other Italian can possibly take pleasure in such melancholy reveries; but the marriage of Sin and Death, and snakes issuing from the womb of the former, are enough to make any person sick that is not lost to all sense of delicacy. This obscene, whimsical, and disagreeable poem met with the neglect it deserved at its first publication; and I only treat the author now as he was treated in his own country by his contemporaries."
xxx/ellauri388.html on line 88: In 1913, Maria Lindell moved to Helsinki for the first time. Her first child had died in 1908 within two weeks of its birth. She left her second child in Tampere for care. The third one she kept in a jar. Accused of several thefts, Maria Lindell was imprisoned for the second time on 24 October 1914, and gave birth to a boy while serving her sentence. After being released from prison, Maria Lindell was taken to the women´s shelter, Villa Elseboh, in Huopalahti, maintained by the Finnish Prison Association. According to Kari Selén (remember HIM?) who wrote her biography, Lindell took advantage of the shelter, although at the same time she worked as a babysitter there. Lindell served her third and final prison sentence convicted of thefts from 1920 to 1923. This prison period marked a frontier, after which Maria Lindell became "Madame Minna Craucher" with various phases.
xxx/ellauri388.html on line 91: The authors of the magazine included at least Kersti Bergroth, Pentti Haanpää, Martti Merenmaa, Elina Vaara, Väinö Nuorteva, and Mika Waltari. The editors-in-chief were Yrjö Rauanheimo, Lauri Viljanen and Waltari. Craucher was the acquirer and marketer of the magazine´s advertising space. As the magazine itself was not very attractive, Craucher even resorted to blackmail in obtaining advertising contracts.
xxx/ellauri388.html on line 105: Konrad sanoi, että juuri tuon sielua kuolettavan koneellistumisen vastapainoksi ihmisen olisi siirryttävä maalle ja elettävä yksinkertaista elämää ansaiten leipänsä kättensä työllä. Silloin herra Robert Örn sanoi lämpimästi toivovansa, että hänen poikansa osaisi Strindberginsä yhtä perusteellisesti kuin Tolstoinsa, sillä slaavilainen ja eurooppalainen sielu eivät koskaan voineet yhtyä saamatta jo syntymässä paskahalvausta. Mutta rouva Örn uhkasi vilpittömästi kauhistuen miestään - 'oj, den förfärliga Strindberg' ja alkoi kohta kertoa Strindbergin ensimmäisen puolison murheellisesta kohtalosta, hänhän asui parhaillaan Helsingissä, hän oli von Esseneitä omaa sukuaan, ja elätti itseään antamalla soittotunteja!
xxx/ellauri388.html on line 219: Lääketieteellisten asiantuntijoiden joukossa, jotka ovat keskustelleet seksuaalisesta pidättymiskysymyksestä pitkään, ei todellakaan yleensä ole mahdollista löytää sellaisia ehdottomia mielipiteitä sen hyväksi, kuin mitä lainaan. Ei voi kuitenkaan olla epäilystäkään siitä, että suuri osa lääkäreistä, lukuun ottamatta merkittäviä ja arvostettuja auktoriteetteja, joutuessaan välinpitämättömästi kohtaamaan kysymyksen, onko seksuaalinen pidättyvyys vaaratonta, valitsee heti ilmeisen vähimmän vastustuksen tien ja vastaa: Kyllä. Vain harvoissa tapauksissa he eivät edes määrittele tätä myöntävää vastausta. Tätä suuntausta havainnollistaa erittäin hyvin tohtori Ludwig Jacobsohnin, Pietarin, tekemä kysely ("Die Sexuelle Enthaltsamkeit im Lichte der Medizin", St. Petersburger Medicinische Wochenschrift , 17. maaliskuuta 1907). Hän kirjoitti yli kahdellesadalle arvostetulle venäläiselle ja saksalaiselle fysiologian, neurologian, psykiatrian jne. professorille ja kysyi heiltä, pitävätkö he seksuaalista pidättymistä vaarattomana. Suurin osa ei vastannut mitään; yksitoista venäläistä ja 28 saksalaista vastasi, mutta neljä heistä vain sanoi, että "heillä ei ollut henkilökohtaista kokemusta" jne.; siellä oli siis jäljellä kolmekymmentäviisi. Näistä Bonnin E. Pflüger suhtautui skeptisesti kaiken pidättymispropagandan etuihin: "Jos kaikki maailman viranomaiset julistaisivat pidättymisen vaarattomuuden, sillä ei olisi mitään vaikutusta nuoriin. Täällä ovat pelissä mukana voimat, jotka murtavat kaiken esteitä."
xxx/ellauri388.html on line 223: Tschish piti raittiutta mieluummin hyödyllisenä kuin haitallisena 25-28-vuotiaaksi asti, mutta hänen mielestään oli vaikea päättää tämän iän jälkeen, milloin hermostomuutoksia näyttää aiheutuvan. Darkschewitcz piti pidättymistä vaarattomana 25-vuotiaaksi asti. Fränkel sanoi, että se oli useimmille vaaratonta, mutta huomattavalle osalle ihmisistä yhdyntä on välttämätöntä. Jacobsohn pitää Erbin mielipidettä yksinään; hän asetti iän, jonka alapuolelle pidättyminen on vaaratonta, kaksikymmentä; tuon iän jälkeen hän piti sitä terveydelle haitallisena, vakavasti työtä ja toimintakykyä haittaavana, kun taas neuroottisilla henkilöillä se johtaa vielä vakavampiin seurauksiin. Jacobsohn päättelee, että kyselyyn vastanneiden yleinen mielipide voidaan näin ilmaista: "Nuorten tulee olla pidättyväisiä. Raittius ei voi millään tavalla vahingoittaa heitä; päinvastoin, se on hyödyllistä. Jos nuoremme pysyvät pidättyväisinä ja välttävät avioliiton ulkopuolisia suhteita, yhdynnässä he säilyttävät korkean rakkauden ihanteen ja suojelevat itseään sukupuolitaudeilta."
xxx/ellauri388.html on line 233: Uskonnollisen moraalin näkökulmasta tämä sama asenne, jommankumman osapuolen ääripäiden välillä, joka tunnustaa seksuaalisen pidättymisen edut, mutta ei vaadi, että niitä ostetaan hinnalla millä hyvänsä, on myös löytänyt edustuksen. Näin ollen Englannissa anglikaaninen pappi, pastori H. Northcote (Christianity and Sex Problems , s. 58, 60) käsittelee maltillisesti ja myötätuntoisesti seksuaalisen raittiuden vaikeuksia, eikä ole millään tavalla vakuuttunut siitä, että tällainen pidättyminen on aina sekoittamaton etu; kun taas Saksassa katolinen pappi, Karl Jentsch (Sexualethik, Sexualjustiz, Sexualpolizei, 1900) ryhtyy vastustamaan Ribbingin tiukkoja ja ehdottomia väitteitä seksuaalisen pidättymisen puolesta. Jentsch ilmaisee siten, mitä hänen mielestään pitäisi olla isien, yleisen mielipiteen, valtion ja kirkon asenne nuorta miestä kohtaan tässä asiassa: "Yritä olla pidättyväinen avioliittoon asti. Monet onnistuvat tässä. Jos voit menestyä, se on hyvä, mutta jos et voi menestyä, on tarpeetonta moittia itseäsi ja pitää itseäsi roistona tai eksyneenä syntisenä, kunhan et hylkää itseäsi pelkkään nautintoon tai tyhmyyteen on välttämätöntä palauttaaksesi mielenrauhasi, omaisuutesi ja iloisen työkykysi ja että noudatat varotoimia, ennenkö lääkärit tai kokeneet ystävät painavat sinuun."
xxx/ellauri388.html on line 562: Erityiset seikat oikeuttavat siihen otaksumiseen, että usko ei ole vielä horjahtunut teissä. Te haluatte päästä paheestanne, mutta mistä syystä? Eikö vaan siksi, että pelkäätte sen tekevän haittaa teidän taivastoiveille? Että yläkerran ukko nurpistelee tumputuxelle? Kaksi eri ukkoa ei sovi yhtaikaa samaan sydämmeen, ja jos ne sinne yhtaikaa pyrkivät, niin ne siellä muodostavat huvittavan taistelun vallasta. Voi yhtaikaa pyrkiä personallisiin tarkoituksiin ja elää likasissa ajatuksissa, mutta yhtaikaa ei voi elää likasissa ajatuksissa ja pyrkiä epäpersonallisiin tarkoituksiin. (Mixi ei? The proof is obvious.)
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 124: Her family were of the aliʻi class of the Hawaiian nobility and were collateral relations of the reigning House of Kamehameha, sharing common descent from the 18th-century aliʻi nui (supreme monarch) Keaweʻīkekahialiʻiokamoku. From her biological parents, she descended from Keaweaheulu and Kameʻeiamoku, two of the five royal counselors of Kamehameha I during his conquest of the Hawaiian Kingdom. Kameʻeiamoku, the grandfather of both her mother and father, was depicted, along with his royal twin Kamanawa, on the Hawaiian coat of arms. Liliʻuokalani referred to her family line as the "Keawe-a-Heulu line" after her mother's line. The third surviving child of a large family, her biological siblings included: James Kaliokalani, David Kalākaua, Anna Kaʻiulani, Kaʻiminaʻauao, Miriam Likelike and William Pitt Leleiohoku II. She and her siblings were hānai (informally adopted) to other family members. The Hawaiian custom of hānai is an informal form of adoption between extended families practiced by Hawaiian royals and commoners alike.She was given at birth to Abner Pākī and his wife Laura Kōnia and raised with their daughter Bernice Pauahi.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 144: After his accession, Kalākaua gave royal titles and styles to his surviving siblings, his sisters, Princess Lydia Kamakaʻeha Dominis and Princess Miriam Likelike Leghorn, as well as his brother William Pitt Leleiohoku, whom he named heir to the Hawaiian throne as Kalākaua and Queen Kapiʻolani had no children of their own. Leleiohoku died without an heir in 1877. Leleiohoku's hānai (adoptive) mother, Ruth Keʻelikōlani, wanted to be named heir, but the king's cabinet ministers objected as that would place Bernice Pauahi Bishop, Ruth's first cousin, next in line. This would put the Kamehamehas back in succession to the throne again, which Kalākaua did not wish. On top of that, Kalākaua's court genealogists had already cast doubt on Ruth's direct lineage, and in doing so placed doubt on Bernice's. At noon on April 10, Liliʻuokalani became the newly designated heir apparent to the throne of Hawaii. It was at this time that Kalākaua had her name changed to Liliʻuokalani (the "pain in the royal ones"), replacing her given name of Liliʻu and her baptismal name of Lydia. (Lydiahan oli se ämmä Paavalin possessa.) In 1878, Liliʻuokalani and Dominis sailed to California for her health. They stayed in San Francisco and Sacramento where she visited the Crocker Art Museum! Wauzi wauz.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 154: Liliʻuokalani was approached on December 20 and 23 by James I. Dowsett, Jr. and William R. Castle, members of the legislature´s Reform (Missionary) Party, proposing her ascension to the throne if her brother Kalākaua were removed from power. Historian Ralph S. Kuykendall stated that she gave a conditional "if necessary" response; however, Liliʻuokalani´s account was that she firmly turned down both men. In 1889, a part Native Hawaiian officer Robert W Wilcox, who resided in Liliʻuokalan´s Palama residence, instigated an unsuccessful rebellion to overthrow the Bayonet Constitution.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 160: On January 29, 1891, in the presence of the cabinet ministers and the supreme court justices, Liliʻuokalani took the oath of office to uphold the constitution, and became the first and only female monarch of the Hawaiian Kingdom. The first few weeks of her reign were obscured by the funeral of her brother. After the end of the period of mourning, one of her first acts was to request the formal resignation of the holdover cabinet from her brother´s reign. These ministers refused, and asked for a ruling by the Hawaii Supreme Court. All the justices but one ruled in favor of the Queen´s decision, and the ministers resigned. Liliʻuokalani appointed Samuel Parker, Hermann A. Widemann, and William A. Whiting, and reappointed Charles N. Spencer (from the hold-over cabinet), as her new cabinet ministers. On March 9, with the approval of the House of Nobles, as required by the Hawaiian constitution, she named as successor her niece Kaʻiulani, the only daughter of Archibald Scott Cleghorn and her sister Princess Likelike, who had died in 1887. From April to July, Liliʻuokalani paid the customary visits to the main Hawaiian Islands, including a third visit to the leper settlement at Kalaupapa. Historian Ralph Simpson Kuykendall noted, "Everywhere she was accorded the homage traditionally paid by the Hawaiian people to their alii."
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 187: In response, royalists and loyalists formed the Committee of Law and Order and met at the palace square on January 16, 1893. Nāwahī, White, Robert W. Wilcox, and other pro-monarchist leaders gave speeches in support for the queen and the government. To try to appease the instigators, the queen and her supporters abandoned attempts to unilaterally promulgate a constitution.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 197: At the beginning of January 1895, Robert W. Wilcox and Samuel Nowlein launched a rebellion against the forces of the Republic with the aim of restoring the queen and the monarchy. Its ultimate failure led to the arrest of many of the participants and other sympathizers of the monarchy. Liliʻuokalani was also arrested and imprisoned in an upstairs bedroom at the palace on January 16, several days after the failed rebellion, when firearms were found at her home of Washington Place after a tip from a prisoner.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 207: On October 13, 1896, the Republic of Hawaii gave her a full pardon and restored her civil rights. "Upon receiving my full release, I felt greatly inclined to go abroad," Liliʻuokalani wrote in her memoir. From December 1896 through January 1897, she stayed in Brookline, Massachusetts, with her husband's cousins William Lee and Sara White Lee, of the Lee & Shepard publishing house. During this period her long-time friend Julius A. Palmer Jr. became her secretary and stenographer, helping to write every letter, note, or publication. He was her literary support in the 1897 publication of the Kumulipo translation, and helped her in compiling a book of her songs. He assisted her as she wrote her memoir Hawaii's Story by Hawaii´s Queen. Sara Lee edited the book published in 1898 by Lee & Shepard.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 265: The Queen Liliʻuokalani Trust was established on December 2, 1909, for the care of orphaned and destitute children in Hawaii. Effective upon her death, the proceeds of her estate, with the exception of twelve individual inheritances specified therein, were to be used for the Trust. The largest of these hereditary estates were willed to her hānai sons and their heirs: John ʻAimoku Dominis would receive Washington Place while Joseph Kaiponohea ʻAeʻa would receive Kealohilani, her residence at Waikiki. Both men predeceased the Queen. Before and after her death, lawsuits were filed to overturn her will establishing the Trust. One notable litigant was Prince Jonah Kūhiō Kalanianaʻole, Liliʻuokalani´s greedy second cousin, who brought a suit against the Trust on November 30, 1915, questioning the Queen's competency in executing the will and attempting to break the Trust. These lawsuits were resolved in 1923 and the will went into probate. The Queen Liliʻuokalani Children's Center was created by the Trust.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 275: "Treaty to Annex Hawaii". The Times. No. 1185. Washington, D.C. June 17, 1897. Image 1, col. 3. Archived from the original on November 8, 2017. Retrieved October 15, 2017.; "Treaty to Annex Hawaii". The Times. No. 1185. Washington, D.C. June 17, 1897. Image 2, col. 4. Archived from the original on November 8, 2017. Retrieved October 15, 2017.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 277: "By the Ex-Queen: Protest Made to the Annexation of Hawaii. An Appeal for Restoration. Authority of Present Government Denied. Document Signed in Washington and 'Julius' Witnessed the Signature". Hawaiian Gazette. Vol. XXXII, no. 55. Honolulu. July 9, 1897. Image 1, Col. 6. Archived from the original on November 8, 2017. Retrieved October 15, 2017.; "The Ex-Queen's Protest". The Times. No. 1186. Washington, D.C. June 18, 1897. Image 1, col. 7. Archived from the original on November 8, 2017. Retrieved October 15, 2017.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 281: "HAWAII'S EX-QUEEN: Protests Against the Seizure of Her Property". The Herald. Vol. 26, no. 82. Los Angeles. December 21, 1898. Image 1. col. 3. Archived from the original on February 28, 2017. Retrieved October 15, 2017.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 283: "Claims of Ex-Queen". The Pacific Commercial Advertiser. Vol. XXXII, no. 5589. Honolulu. July 5, 1903. p. 10, col. 2. Archived from the original on November 8, 2017. Retrieved October 15, 2017.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 285: "Court Notes". The Independent. Vol. XI, no. 1586. Honolulu. August 16, 1900. p. 4. Archived from the original on October 8, 2016. Retrieved October 2, 2016.; "Dr. English's Suit Against Liliuokalani". The Honolulu Republican. Vol. I, no. 71. Honolulu. September 5, 1900. Image 8, col. 3. Archived from the original on November 9, 2017. Retrieved October 15, 2017.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 287: "Liliuokalani's Claim". The Pacific Commercial Advertiser. Vol. XXXVII, no. 6399. Honolulu. February 10, 1903. Image 4, col. 1. Archived from the original on November 25, 2017. Retrieved October 15, 2017.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 289: Iaukea 2012, pp. 86, 181; "Queen's Pension is Approved". Evening Bulletin. Honolulu. March 30, 1911. p. 2, col. 3. Archived from the original on November 19, 2017. Retrieved October 15, 2017.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 294: "Death Comes to Hawaii's Queen in Calm of Sabbath Morning". Honolulu Star-Bulletin. Honolulu. November 12, 1917. p. 2 headline. Archived from the original on November 8, 2017. Retrieved October 15, 2017.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 296: "Join St. Andrew's – Ex-queen Liliuokalani Confirmed by Bishop Willis". Hawaiian Gazette. Vol. XXXI, no. 40. Honolulu. May 19, 1896. p. 4, col. 6. Archived from the original on October 1, 2017. Retrieved October 15, 2017.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 298: "Queen Jumps in Salt Lake". The Pacific Commercial Advertiser. Vol. XXXIV, no. 6037. Honolulu. December 11, 1900. Image 9, col. 1. Archived from the original on October 10, 2017. Retrieved October 15, 2017.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 302: Barnes, Susan B. (September 18, 2017). "Alohas, sisterhood and grit: the Queen Liliʻuokalani Long Distance Canoe Race". espnW. Archived from the original on September 30, 2017. Retrieved October 15, 2017.; Club, Kai Opua Canoe. "Queen Liliʻuokalani Canoe Race – World's Largest Outrigger Canoe Race". Kai 'Opua Canoe Club. Archived from the original on September 30, 2017. Retrieved October 15, 2017.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 319: Hawaii Legislature (1892). Laws of Her Majesty Liliuokalani, Queen of the Hawaiian Islands: Passed by the Legislative Assembly at Its Session, 1892. Honolulu: Robert Grieve. OCLC 156231006.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 357: Shaka yr money maker! The ubiquitous "shaka" gesture traces its origins back to the early 1900s when Hamana Kalili worked at Kahuku Sugar Mill. His job as a presser was to feed cane through the rollers to squeeze out its juice. One day, Kalili’s right hand got caught in the rollers, and his middle, index and ring fingers were crushed along with the sugar cane. After that, his job was to prevent kids from jumping on the train and taking joyrides as it slowly approached and departed Kahuku Station.
xxx/ellauri394.html on line 448: Chan Kong-sang (s. 7. huhtikuuta 1954), joka tunnetaan ammattimaisesti nimellä Jackie Chan, on hongkongilainen näyttelijä, ohjaaja, käsikirjoittaja, tuottaja, kamppailutaiteilija ja stuntman, joka tunnetaan slapstick-akrobaattisesta taistelutyylistään, sarjakuvallisesta ajoituksestaan ja innovatiivisista tempuistaan, jotka hän yleensä suorittaa itse. Ennen kuin hän siirtyi elokuvateollisuuteen, hän oli yksi seitsemästä pienestä omaisuudesta Kiinan draama-akatemiasta Peking-oopperakoulussa, jossa hän opiskeli akrobatiaa, kamppailulajeja ja näyttelemistä. Chan on näytellyt 1960-luvulta lähtien ja esiintynyt yli 150 elokuvassa. Hän on yksi kaikkien aikojen vaikutusvaltaisimmista toimintaelokuvatähdistä.
xxx/ellauri397.html on line 99: Muita, jotka ovat antaneet äänen tälle Jeesuksen ja Johanneksen välisen suhteen tulkinnalle, ovat olleet filosofit Denis Diderot ja Jeremy Bentham. Pappi Gene Robinson käsitteli Jeesuksen mahdollisia homoeroottisia taipumuksia saarnassaan vuonna 2005. Robinsonin väitettä on arvostellut muun muassa David W. Virtue, joka sanoi sitä "kauhistuttavaksi dekonstruktionismiksi liberaalien lobbyssa, joka pyörittele syrjäisimpiäkin asioita muuttaaksesi sen vihjeeksi siitä, että Raamatun hahmot ovat homoja". Come to think of it, koko kolminaisuuskolmikko on all male paneeli.
xxx/ellauri397.html on line 101: Sitä vastoin kirjailija ja teologi Robert Gagnon on väittänyt, että kreikkalainen sana, joka on käännetty sanaksi "rakastettu", on agape (käytetään esimerkiksi Joh. 3:16:ssa: "sillä niin on Jumala maailmaa rakastanut"), eikä kreikan sanaa, joka viittaa seksuaaliseen rakkauteen, eros. Toisaalta Theodore W. Jennings Jr. huomauttaa, että "eros ei esiinny Uudessa testamentissa eikä Septuagintassa", ja että nämä käyttävät agapea viittaamaan "miehen rakkauteen vaimoaan tai vaimoaan kohtaan", jopa "kohtuuttomasta halusta laittomaan rakkauteen", mukaan lukien kauttaaltaan selkeästi eroottinen (eikä mikään agapeettinen) Salomon laulu.
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 81: Yksi tapa, jolla ihmisen penikset ovat epätavallisia, on se, että ne ovat ihanan sileitä. Lähimmillä elävillä sukulaisillamme, tavallisilla simpansseilla ja bonobo-simpansseilla – joiden kanssa jaamme noin 99 % DNA: stamme – on "peniksen piikit". Näiden pienten väkästen, jotka on valmistettu samasta aineesta kuin iho ja karvat (keratiini), uskotaan kehittyneen poistamaan kilpailevien urosten siittiöitä tai hieromaan kevyesti naaraan emätintä ja estämään hänet seksistä uudelleen hetkeksi. Keskisormen pituuden ja kasvojen houkuttelevuuden, seksuaalisen suuntautumisen, riskinoton, akateemis-sexuaalisen suorituskyvyn, naisten empatiakyvyn, miesten hallitsevuuden ja jopa heidän kivestensä koon erolla on väliä. Kävi ilmi, että simpansseilla, gorilloilla ja orangutaaneilla – jotka ovat yleensä harhaanjohtavia – on keskimäärin lyhkäsempi keskisormi, kun taas Israelin luolasta löydetyllä varhaismodernilla ihmisellä ja nykyajan juutalaisilla on sileät nahattomat kyrvät mahottoman isot.
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 142: obvious. A critic must have a sound commonsense and clear thinking in order to judge or evaluate the works of literature in an efficient way.
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 208: noble nature, poetically gifted, treats with
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 212: Arnold did not like lyrics and could not stand romantics nor comics. He was a typical mediocre Victorian. Arnold is sometimes called the third great Victorian poet, along with Alfred, Lord Tennyson, and Robert Browning.
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 217: He considered the most important criteria used to judge the value of a poem were "high truth" and "high seriousness". By this standard, Chaucer's Canterbury Tales did not merit Arnold's approval. According to Arnold, Homer is the best model of a simple grand style, while Milton is the best model of severe grand style. Dante, however, is an example of both. Even Chaucer, in Arnold's view, in spite of his virtues such as benignity, largeness, and spontaneity, lacks seriousness. Burns too lacks sufficient seriousness, because he was hypocritical in that while he adopted a moral stance in some of his poems, in his private life he flouted morality. Arnold believed that a modern writer should be aware that contemporary literature is built on the foundations of the past, and should contribute to the future by continuing a firm tradition. Quoting Goethe and Kuckuksuhr in support of his view, he asserts that his age suffers from spiritual weakness because it thrives on self-interest and scientific materialism, and therefore cannot provide noble characters such as those found in Classical literature.
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 219: In The Study of Poetry, (1888) which opens his Essays in Criticism: Second series, in support of his plea for nobility in poetry, Arnold recalls Sainte-Beuve's reply to Napoleon, when latter said that charlatanism is found in everything. Sainte-Beuve replied that charlatanism might be found everywhere else, but not in the field of poetry, because in poetry the distinction between sound and unsound, or only half-sound, truth and untruth, or only half-truth, between the excellent and the inferior, is nonexistent.
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 227: In spite of their charm, the essays are characterised by egotism and, as Tilotson says, 'the attention is directed, not on his object but on himself and his objects together'.
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 231: Eliot is also indebted to Arnold for his classicism, and for his objective approach which paved the way for Eliot to say that poetry is not an expression of personality but an escape from personality, because it is not an expression of emotions but an escape from emotions. What an idiot.
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 248: Katzenarschlecker Graf Raimund VI. von Toulouse verweigerte ebenfalls jede Unterstützung und wurde deshalb 1207 exkommuniziert. Nachdem am 14. Januar 1208 der päpstliche Legat Pierre de Castelnau von einem Gefolgsmann des Grafen von Toulouse ermordet worden war, rief Papst Innozenz III. im Herbst desselben Jahres mit den Worten „Voran, Soldaten Christi!“ zum Kreuzzug gegen die Katharer auf. Den teilnehmenden Kreuzfahrern wurde (nach einer Mindestteilnahmedauer von 40 Tagen) die Vergebung der Sündenstrafen (Ablass) in Aussicht gestellt. Die eroberten Gebiete sollten vom Papst an adelige Kreuzzugsteilnehmer als Lehen neu vergeben werden.
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 254: In den frühen 1220er Jahren verschlechterten sich die Erfolgsaussichten für den Albigenserkreuzzug rapide. Es mangelte an Kreuzrittern, Eroberungen gingen verloren und die Katharer wagten sich wieder an die Öffentlichkeit. Nach dem Tod Graf Raimunds VI. von Toulouse im Jahr 1222 übernahm dessen Sohn Raimund VII. die Führung des Widerstandes. Die ungünstige Situation veranlasste Amalrich von Montfort schließlich, Okzitanien 1224 zu verlassen. Seine Besitzungen in den eroberten Gebieten verkaufte er dem nunmehrigen König von Frankreich, Ludwig VIII.
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 256: 1226 führte der französische König einen neuerlichen Angriff in Südfrankreich. Offiziell stand dieser Krieg immer noch im Rahmen des vom Papst ausgerufenen Kreuzzuges, wobei die Interessen des Königs jedoch vorrangig in der Einverleibung der südfranzösischen Provinzen lagen. Zwar starb Ludwig noch im selben Jahr, der Krieg wurde jedoch von seinem Sohn Ludwig IX. auch 1227 unvermindert fortgesetzt. 1228 gab Graf Raimund VII. von Toulouse nach einem zermürbenden und zerstörerischen Krieg von fast 20 Jahren den Widerstand auf. Am 12. April 1229 schloss er den Vertrag von Paris mit der französischen Krone. Darin wurde die Eingliederung Okzitaniens in den französischen Staat besiegelt, Raimund VII. musste große Gebietsverluste hinnehmen. Ebenfalls 1229 fand in Toulouse eine kirchliche Synode statt, die sich mit dem weiteren Vorgehen gegen die Katharer befasste. Damit war der Albigenserkreuzzug offiziell beendet. Die Inquisition und weitere militärische Feldzüge vernichteten schließlich die Katharer bis zum Ende des 13. Jahrhunderts.
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 311: Eventually, Joyce´s bank account dried up. Her landlord sent her reminder letters. These papers, like the others, simply fell among the others scattered on her floor. They received no response. Finally, with more than six months of rent in arrears, the landlord obtained a court order to forcibly remove her from the premises. The bailiffs broke down the door and only then was her body discovered. By then, it was January 2006, more than two years after her death.
xxx/ellauri400.html on line 313: In all this time, no one has ever come looking for Joyce Vincent. No family, no friends, no colleagues, no neighbors who knocked on the door to see if everything was okay. Nobody called. She was 38 when she died.
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 52: «Generasjon Greta Thunberg er død», sa Unge Høyre-lederen. Han tok ikke helt feil. Unge Høyre-leder Ola Svenneby sa at «generasjon Greta Thunberg er død» da det ble klart at Høyre fikk mest oppslutning i årets skolevalg. Han har senere tatt selvkritikk på utspillet. Ved forrige valg var klimapolitikk en av de viktigste sakene som ble diskutert, om ikke den viktigste. Resultater fra årets skolevalg viser at ungdommen bryr seg mest om personlig økonomi og helse, ifølge en Norstat-undersøkelse for Aftenposten. Etter årets skolevalg er det tydelig at den folkebevegelsen jeg så sterkt følte meg som en del av, ikke var så sterk som jeg trodde. Dette har gjort at jeg har mistet håpet for fremtiden. Den gangen var jeg en idealist, nå er jeg en realist. Dagens ungdommer er opptatt av å jobbe seg opp en formue, spare til bolig, gjøre det bra på skolen, stå opp tidlig, trene og spise sunt. Selvfølgelig er det en generalisering, men jeg vil anta at det er noe mange på min alder kan kjenne seg igjen i. Jeg tror derfor det oppbrukte begrepet «generasjon prestasjon» til en viss grad kan forklare hvorfor Høyre og Fremskrittspartiet gjorde et brakvalg blant dagens ungdom dette skolevalget.
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 116: Suomen presidentti Stubbels vastasi iskuihin Venäjän lentokentälle Olenyalle: Meidän on hyväksyttävä, että sota lähestyy meitä. The toothy Finnish president said that Finns should accept the fact that the war will come closer to Finland's borders, as "it is not that far to fly from Helsinki to Kyiv". 2000km from Ukraine to Murmansk is too much for drones, they must have started somewhere closer by: Norway, Sweden, Finland or Russia. "We have to accept the fact that Ukraine has to use all their assets to win this war, and this also means various strikes. So Russia too will continue to launch hybrid strikes," Stubb commented. We have to accept that as well. We have to accept that these goddamn simian idiots react to global warming by flaring up a harmaggeddon war of all against all. Mutta voimme ize valita millä arvokkaalla tavalla me hyväxymme sen. Ottaa oravahampaisesta presidentistä mallia. Hän on hyväxynyt että hän on ruma kalkkuna. Hyväxyn. Kiitos. Hän on tyhmä kuin ladonovi mutta ilkeämpi. KZ:n käynyt Benjamin Franklin antaa aplodeja luukasana.
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 167: Pornography laws relating to children do not cover manga, anime, or virtually created content, allowing games such as RapeLay, in which the player stalks and attempts to rape a single mother and her two school-age daughters. But they are probably adults who are wearing uniforms... they call it JK business but they are probably pretending to be schoolchildren. In Tokyo’s schools there’s no sex education. You can’t mention ‘intercourse’ or ‘sex.´ Teenage girls sell their unwashed uniforms, underwear and swimwear.
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 266: Harryllä on vähän tollasta bipolaarista heilurointia, huhtikuussa siltä lähtee aina mahlat nousemaan. Sielu vertyy, kaipaus nostaa jälleen lentimiään. Ydinmehut lähtee liikkumaan. O Hymen Hymenae! Notusque calor per membrum cucurrit. Saispa toosaa! Pääsispä puhkomaan immenkalvoja! Mutta ei. Bugger it. Ah, kärsimyxen ja pahan probleema on pelkän olemisen jälkeen pahin arvoitus. Jos olisi puhtaasti henkinen elimistö, niin ei voisi tehdä syntiä. Voiko äiti vihata lastaan taivaassa? Kaikki nämä jutut ovat uskon kannalta välttämättömiä, vaikka päättömiä. Kazokaa, osaan ajaa ilman päätä! Käy niinkuin täytyy käydä, ja hyvin niinkuin käy. Kun kukin toimii virassaan, niin lehmät hyvin hoidetaan. Mutta elokuussa se tahtoisi taas kuolla ja tulla nussituxi uudestaan. Niin paljon mahtuu pieneen sydämeen. Henri on niin ympäripyöreä että sen on pakko olla vaaka. Niin se muuten onkin! Sen syntymäpäivä on huomenna 27.9. Se täyttää 203 vuotta! Henri, onnea!
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 316: Eli Annikeris oli kyrenanfilosofi, joka kukoisti neljännen ja kolmannen vuosisadan aikana eKr. Toisin kuin Aristippus, kyrenan koulun perustaja, joka hyväksyi moraaliperiaatteena hetken nautinnon, ja Theodore, joka opetti, että kriteeri on ihminen onnellisella tuulella, Annikeris esitti hienostuneempia näkemyksiä mielihyvästä ja nautinnosta: hän korosti, että todellinen ilo ja nautinto saavutetaan yhteisössä, ystävyydessä, perheessä, ryhmässä, valtiossa, WTF, globalisaatiossa viime kädessä. Yllä tunnustetaan siis yksilön nautintoja, kollektiivin elämän nautintoja ja sosiaalisia arvoja.
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 351: IV. Pyhän Hengen laskeutuminen. Ekstaattisia ja profeetallisia ilmiöitä v. Jerusalemin ensimmäinen kirkko; hän on kaikki cenobitic
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 389: Hei hetkinen, tää Luukasa joka kynäili 3. evankeliumin ja apostolien teot ei hevin voinut olla Jee-suxen opetuslapsi kert nää jutut kirjoitettiin puolisen vuosisataa oikeusmurhaa myöhemmin. Luukasa ei siis ollut mikään silminnäkijä vaan pikemminkin Piven akolyytti, Pikku Markusta lisää alla. No ei Lucky Luke olekkaan 12 (tai 13) alkup opetuslapsen nimilistassa.. Evankelista on eri asia kuin apostoli hölmö. Ne olivat Andreas, Bartolomeus, Filippus, Jaakob Alfeuksen poika, Jaakob vanhempi, Johannes (evankelista), Juudas Iskariot, Matteus (evankelista), Mattias (apostoli), Pietari (apostoli), Salome (opetuslapsi), Simon Kananeus, Tuomas (apostoli). Mikäs tää Salome oli? Onko pussiin pujahtanut makkaraton typy? Salome oli Jeesus Kristuksen seuraaja. Hän oli Sebedeuksen vaimo, Jaakob vanhemman ja Johanneksen äiti. Tämä kristinuskoon liittyvä artikkeli on tynkä. Joh. on eritt. suspekti tapaus, sehän on silkkaa gnostilaisuutta. Ei edes synoptinen kuin ne muut. Onko Matteus siis noista sepustuxista alkuperäisin? Oliko kukaan evankelistoista edes paikalla? Onxne eyewitness news vai pelkkää hearsay?
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 393: Paizi ei helvetti, vaan näin: Kansainvälinen Q-projekti kokosi 2000-luvun vaihteessa useita kansainvälisesti tunnettuja tutkijoita rekonstruoimaan Q-lähteen sisältöä. Mukana olivat esimerkiksi John Kloppenborg, James Robinson ja Risto Uro. Vuonna 2001 julkaistu Q-rekonstruktio kokoaa niin sanotun Sanontojen evankeliumin (engl. Quotes Gospel) tai Q-evankeliumin muotoon, jossa kadonneen evankeliumin kokonaisuus on hahmotettavissa. Rekonstruktio on englanniksi luettavissa esimerkiksi John Kloppenborgin kotisivustolla täällä. (Jumala ei kenties enää vastaa tästä Toronton nummerosta. Jos ei, se on voi, hän tietää kyllä parhaiten. Onnexi saatana pitää varmuuskopioita mm. täällä. Lisäinfoa myös täällä.) Outoa kyllä Kari Syreeniä ei mainita Q-lähteenä. Kenties sixi että se on menettänyt uskonsa. Uskottavuus meni samalla.
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 473: Vanhan liiton dokumenteissa on psalmeissa muutamia mainintoja lunastuxesta mutta pitkässä paperissa ei ole jeesuxen nimeä vaan Jehova maxumiehenä ja jotkut vihulaiset saamapuolella. Steve Jobs odottaa yhdessä kohtaa lunastajaa mutta ilmeisesti silloisista ikävyyxistä.
xxx/ellauri404.html on line 475: Jesajalla on samantapainen maininta lunastuxesta. Mut puhuja lie Superman Tattoo ize eikä sen poika, ja puhuteltava on nilkku Jaakob, joka ei enää palvo klapeja: "Muista nämä asiat, Jaakob, sillä sinä, Israel, olet minun palvelijani. Olen tehnyt sinut, sinä olet minun palvelijani; Israel, en unohda sinua. Olen pyyhkäissyt pois syntisi kuin pilven, syntisi kuin aamun sumun. Palaa luokseni, sillä minä olen lunastanut sinut." Jes 44:22ff Mutta keneltä?
xxx/ellauri407.html on line 82: Huippuvastenmielisissä Helsingin Sanomissa on taas matuvastaista kirjoittelua. Rekolan nähtävästi kiinalaistaustainen kirpputori josta Länsiväylä-lehti jo kirjoitti viime vuonna xenofobisen tuohtuneesti, on nyt Hesarin lampaanhampaissa. Hesarin tutkiva journalisti kävi paikalla. Ovi oli kiinni. Repu paki repi turhaan ovea tuomassa myytäväxi tyttärensä kanssa varmasti varastettua imurin letkua. Paleface persu juippi lippalakki väärinpäin näyttää huolestuneelta. Käpylästä varastettu hieno maastopyörä oli löytynyt Rekolan kirpputorin tiskin alta. Kellopeli appelsiini poliisista levittelee käsiään: toiminta ei voi valitettavasti vain kieltää kun suurin osa merchandisesta on laillista. Rekola on Suomen Springfield, muunkielisten prosentti on tällä vuosituhannella noussut toiselle kymmenelle. Ei vittu jotain olis tehtävä. Kun verotus ei toimi tarvitaan lisää näitä Robin Hoodeja.
xxx/ellauri407.html on line 122: Alastonmallilla ottaa eteen piirustustunnilla. Taiteilija ei voi mitään izelleen, tuota on ihan pakko imuttaa. Mallilta tulee ennen runkkua varteenotettavia vinkkejä. Lick my ball-point pen too. Touch yourself when doing that. WTF, kazo mieluummin koko ob_time_featuring_an_ambitious_student_in_hd_with_english_subtitles" />video.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 108: 1948 Awarded Nobel Prize for Literature.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 127: Kääntyessään anglikaanixi tai anglokatoliikixi (whichever who cares) se otti mallia uustomistiselta personalisti Maritainilta, josta on jo monta mainintaa, ei järin mairittelevaa. Huysmans oli toinen dekadentti proselyytti, niistäkin jo voisi tehdä taulukon. Tom käytti kääntymystä verukkeena Vivienin dumppauxeen. Pyhäin yhteyteen pääsee basta kun on luopunut maanpäällisten olentojen pukkauxesta, siteeraa se spanjuunoja mystikoita. Eli vasta kun on kyrpä ripustettu nahkurin orrelle kuivumaan. Sieltä se sen kyllä otti sittemmin taas Esmen pilluun vettymään. Uskonnossa Tomi piti eniten rähmällään rukoilemisesta ja tunnustamisesta, pyllistyxestä ja katumukshesta. Ihmisen suurin kunnia on saada ylistää jumalaa. No ei se sitä pahaxikaan pane. On se siitä merkillinen kaveri. "Russell uskoo että kuoltuaan hän mätänee, mutta minä en voi uskoa sellaista vakaumusta mihkään uskoon kuuluvaxi." Ei se ole mikään vakaumus, vaan hypoteesi, jonka jälkeenjääneet voivat todentaa. Tom oli samanlainen narsisti kuin Belovin Sale. Mahdotonta että mä häviäisin, sillä miten kävisi muun maailman? Molemmille mätkähti dynypalkinto länsivakaumusten puolustajina. Mot (Tom kääntymyxen jälkeen) käänsi vielä St John Perseen unettavan proosarunon Analbase, josta on pitkä paasaus albumissa 141 jonka olin täysin unohtanut. Siinä vielä 1 mitääntekemätön nobelisti. Nobelkynäilijät eroavat muista siinä että ruåzalaiset on antaneet niille paljon kurnuja kiitoxexi uskollisuudesta länkkäreiden vakaumuxille.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 136: This essay assembles the “Bolovian Epic” from the Columbo and Bolo verses and nonsense letters that T.S. Eliot wrote over a period of eighteen years (1910–1928). Such an aggregation is made possible by the publication of excised poems from the “Waste Land” Notebook and Volumes I–IV of The Letters of T.S. Eliot. Rather than seeing individual parts of the epic as simply obscene, I interpret the whole project and its contexts as grounded in his appreciation for the primitive and a critical disdain for the so-called civilized. Eliot invents a composite race of people, the Bolovians, whose influence on modern times includes racy behavior, religious affinities, and bowler hats. Understanding this bawdy, blue, or nonsense material contributes capitally to previous scholarship defaming Eliot's moral and cultural values.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 144: The Bolovian verses carry much critical baggage. To Conrad Aiken, they are “hilariously naughty parerga” or “admirable stanzas” (March 22). Ezra Pound calls them “chançons ithyphallique” (IMH xvi). Bonamy Dobrèe claims, “They are part of an elaborated joke, nurtured through years. It is about some primitive people called the Bolovians, who wore bowler hats, and had square wheels to their chariots” (Tate 73). Subsequent descriptions are equally diverse, ranging from “pornographic doggerel” (Thorpe) to “scabrous exuberances” (Ricks xvi). One critic says they have “a surprising racial, even racist, focus” (Cooper 66). Another claims “these poems comically and obscenely portray the history of early European expansion as an orgy of uncontrollable desire and deviant sexuality” (McIntire 283). Pornoa mikä pornoa. Eliot borrows generously from common bawdy songs and joins a long list of classical writers who indulge in sexual, obscene, erotic, bawdy, scatological, and otherwise blue verse.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 174: Why it is called blue, however, is not so clear. In nineteenth century American usage, “the roughest characters . . . make the air blue with their oaths and obscene language” or “disorderly boys . . . were making the air blue with profane and obscene language” (“blue”). Blue shirts and blue bloods, Eliot’s Bolo asserts, wear about the same.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 180: In mock seriousness, Eliot frames the seventeen Notebook stanzas (mostly octavos) as Elizabethan drama. They begin, “Let a tucket be sounded on the hautboys. Enter the king and queen.” Then commence the obscenities. In Spain, Columbo is treated for syphilis by a “bastard jew named Benny” when he “filled Columbo’s prick / with Muriatic Acid” (IMH 315, 149). Later Columbo seeks help from the ship’s physician concerning another symptom of syphilis. “ ‘It’s this way, doc’ he said said he / I just cant stop a-pissin [sic]” (Letters I 231). Columbo and his mariners of song are well-known for their whoring. “One Sunday evening after tea / They went to storm a whore house,” and from a “seventh story window,” “bitched” Columbo with a “pisspot” (IMH 315). Ed Madden says that Columbo and sailors may have had pumps of argyrol and muriatic acid [dilute hydrochloric acid] “rammed up their penises” to treat their syphilis (151). When they set sail for America, “Queen Isabella was aboard / That famous Spanish whore.” With only Queen Isabella aboard and a boy named Orlandino, the horny crew have to make do until they reach land (IMH 315). In Cuba, they encounter King Bolo and his thirty-three “swarthy” bodyguards. They “were called the Jersey Lilies / a wild and hardy set of blacks” and like Columbo, are “undaunted by syphilis” (IMH 316). Madden calls them “the phallically well-endowed bodyguards of King Bolo,” but “swarthy,” “wild,” and “hardy” does not mean “well-endowed.” Columbo is. There are many reversals in these verses: Columbo is equipped with his prodigious bolo, and neither the New World nor the Old World gave the other syphilis. They both had it.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 210: Manila Harbor in 1909. “He was forced to resign . . . following an alleged liaison with a cabin boy” (Letters II 768n). But the cabin boy was savʼd alive/ And buggerʼd, in the sphincter. Eliot was convinced that his father thought him a failure. Publication of these verses might reverse that problem.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 225: Eliot writes to Dobrèe: Your confusion of the Crocodile and Camel recalls the behaviour of the primitive inhabitants of Bolovia. A notoriously lazy race. They had two Gods, named respectively Wux and Wux [a progenitor of the Greek “wanax,” meaning divine king?]. They observed that the carving of Idols out of ebony was hard work; therefore they carved only one Idol. In the Forenoon, they worshipped it as Wux, from the front; in the Afternoon, they worshiped it from Behind as Wux. (Hence the Black Bottom.) Those who worshipped in front were called Modernists; those who worshipped from behind were called Fundamentalists. (Letters II 509) They are noted for wearing bowler hats and practicing economically a ditheistic religion, using one idol for the two gods. Eliot’s comic sketches include men wearing bowler hats, which Eliot had
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 241: That his bawdy verse was not published anywhere was a continuous joke in Eliotʼs correspondence. When they were finally available to the public in 1996, they received diverse labels: “scatological,” “scabrous,” “obscene,” “pornographic” and “x-rated,” “politically incorrect,” “racist” and “misogynist,” tending towards “coprophilia,” and “grotesquely graphic. In their childish and sordid sexuality these poems have little to do with one of the root meanings of ribald, which is amorous. Instead, they are "descriptions of huge penises, defecations, buggeries and group masturbations." Twenty years later, Eliot was writing Cats, and forgive me, I prefer the kink.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 272: Hulmen painotus kuvan tärkeydestä vaikutti rankasti muihin runoelimiin, kuten Ezra Poundin paxuun mutta lyhköseen ja T.S Eliotin puoliveteiseen. Hulme sai apua Bergsonilta imagismiin ja Gustave Kahnilta loppusoinnuttomaan runoiluun.
Loppusoinnuttomuus oli aikamoinen vallankumous. Ancient Greek and Roman poetry did not rhyme, and early European poetry did not rhyme either. In the West, rhyme began to emerge during the medieval period. In other countries, such as China, rhyming occurred much earlier. In fact, the earliest surviving evidence of rhyming dates back to China in the tenth century BC. Rhyme, as a tradition, probably came into English through the French influence following the Norman invasion of England. It may be that the Latin based languages of Europe took the idea of rhyme from the Arabic during the period that the Moors ruled in much of the Iberian Peninsula.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 279: Gustave Kahn heaped praise on Aitzik Feder, Ukrainan juutalaiselle maalarille jonka Pétain kaasututti. Ortodoxijuutalaisten kännyköistä ei pääse nettiin eikä niillä voi textata. Toisaalta puhelujen hinta on 1/5 normaalista. “You pay less and you’re playing by the rules,” Mr. Pinczower, 39, said. “You’re using technology but in a way that maintains religious integrity." Some 60 percent of ultra-Orthodox men do not work regular jobs, preferring religious study.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 557: Critical Appreciation: The poem is complex, but has been called by one critic "rather cool juggling with religious history." The poem seems to take delight in the play of words and in making obscurely learned references. Hyi Tom, ettes häpeä!
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 874: Old Possumista Hobbes kuului "erityisen vähäpätöisten nousukkaiden" joukkoon. Tomi oli tässä kokemusasiantuntija, sillä Vivienin mielestä Tom oli "inhottavin nousukas mitä ikinä olen tuntenut."
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 897: Úbedan veljet protestoivat ja 15. syyskuuta 1596 paavi Klemens VIII julkaisi lyhyen Expositum Nobis -kirjeen, jossa määrättiin jäännösten palauttamisesta Úbedaan. Myöhemmin paavin ohjeeseen tehtiin muutos, joka antoi kalkkikarmeliittien esimiehen määrätä palauttaa Úbedaan vain toinen jalka ja yksi käsivarsi, jotka saapuivat sinne 7. syyskuuta 1607.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 982: Kretz-perheen tarina ilmentää bisnestaidon, akateemisen kyvykkyyden ja monipuolisen ammatillisen kokemuksen fuusiota. Heidän yhteinen matkansa Olivierin yrittäjyydestä Sandrinen luovuuteen ja poikiensa globaaleihin tekoihin maalaa muotokuvan perheestä, joka on juurtunut syvälle luksuskiinteistöjen maailmaan.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 992: UnknownOctober 10, 2016 at 5:22 PM
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 996: Doug EvansOctober 11, 2016 at 6:25 AM
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1036: UnknownOctober 11, 2016 at 5:26 PM
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1046: Doug EvansOctober 12, 2016 at 5:57 AM
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1074: Doug is 100% on target with the god of Mormonism. Mormonism's god lives on a planet out near the star Kolob, and he was once a man who earned his way to godhood. The God of the Bible has always been God, and created man! And He is a spirit, never a man. He has no banana, and no nuts, and did not come from some Planet of the Apes, though he looks a little like us.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1076: Glenn E. ChatfieldOctober 12, 2016 at 9:42 AM
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1131: The ridiculous concept of the trinity was fabricated at the Council of Nicaea by evil men to obfuscate the plain and simple truths of the scriptures.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1137: The problem with the doctrine of the trinity is that less than educated people like Joseph Smith, Charles Taze Russell, Brigham Young, Joseph Franklin Rutherford injected their own prejudices into the clear word of God and satan's plan to undermine the Gospel spread
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1145: The scriptures are very clear that there is a Father, a Son, and a Holy Spirit. It's very simple, fathers and sons are obviously different people, how else can one come from the other's nuts and banana?
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1187: The blog only contains a list of syllogisms which restate the obvious. I'm interested in specific answers to my questions and a citation of the verses which state that the Father, Son, and Spirit are one physical being.
xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1202: Being spirits by nature, God and his Holy Spirit are not bound by your preconceived notions of personhood. Should you think clearly on this using the biblical descriptions of God, your question should be "How could Jesus, being a physical being, be part of a trinity made up of spiritual beings" and when you're thinking clearly the answer becomes very obvious.
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 91: Parempi kun kaikki globalisoituvat anglosaxeixi. Hallituxia ei tarvita, alfakoiraat kuten Musk ja Trump, Larry Page, Bill Gates, Jeff Bezos tekee päätöxet.
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 120: Mikä on tilanne Kurskin alueella lokakuun 23. päivänä? Mash Telegram -kanava kertoi, että Venäjän asevoimat hyökkäsivät onnistuneesti Ukrainan asevoimien ryhmään Kurskin alueella (https://news.ru/regions/situaciya-v-kurskoj-oblasti-utrom-23-oktyabrya-proryv-vojsk-novoivanovka/) useista suunnista kerralla.
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 138: Tämän jälkeen Pöllölän kunniasolu, ikäpuhemies Jerobeam Näppinen edeskuljetti ytimellisessä puheessa lahon porvarillisen mädännäisyyden ja uuden aamuruskon auermat, jotka punaisella sarastuksella heloittavat kaukaisen idän kangastuksissa. Valkoinen taantumusaaltoilu peittää vihertävällä vaahdolla suuren osan Europasta, ja Amerikan kontinentaalissa ovat virkanyrkkien petomaiset käpälät antaneet kauhistuttavia iskuja proletaarien paljastettuihin paikkoihin. Imperialismi viuhuu vihureina, ollen romahdusasteellaan. Se kuitenkin vielä vihaisesti kuohahtelee, kosketellen pohjamutia, kansakuntain alanteissa, josta olee sillen itselleen turmio, estellen likinäköisessä sokeudessaan punakumousta ja suurta yleisinhimillistä mullistusta, joka kiertelemättömästi kohisee kohti mahtipontisena orgaanina, pyyhkäisten yhteiskunnan huippuja peloittavalla henkäyksellä.
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 222: only to realize that you’re probably the only
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 261: That’s your problem?? - Hire someone from India
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 289: better paid jobs - or get better social
xxx/ellauri414.html on line 349: Jos Gore olis päihittänyt Bushin olisiko Irak jäänyt pillomatta ja koko globaalinen kansainvaellus pysäytetty ajoissa? Kiitos USAn vihreiden näin ei päässyt käymään, Gore hävisi Bushille Floridassa 500 äänellä kun vihreiden ehdokas ei luovuttanut ajoissa. Stop the steal! Typerät länkkärit tunkee nyt ukrainaa joka paikkaan, isovenäjä on ihan pannassa. Nk nyytisvirta on niin täynnä propagandafeikkiä että yhtä hyvin vois lukea Grimmin satuja, alkaen vaikka punahilkasta.
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 68: Väkäleukainen blondi shixa ja huonopartainen lälly wannabe-reformipäärabbi aikovat venxuttaa epätodennäköistä ja epäsuotavaa liittoaan vielä toisen tuotantokauden. Gäsp. Olis vaan ottanut sen nätimmän Rebekan. Nobody wants this.
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 136: Nissim ben Jacob Kairosta tarjoaa meriselityksen, joka on lähempänä tekstiä. Hänen mukaansa Rabbi Meir ja Bruriah joutuivat pakenemaan Babyloniaan sen jälkeen, kun Rooman valtakunta teloitti hänen isänsä, myi äitinsä orjuuteen ja sisarensa seksiorjuuteen bordellissa (rabbi Meirin pelastamana) ja etsivät häntä. Myös muut rabbiiniset lähteet kiistävät Rashin kommentin, ja ortodoksisten rabbien keskuudessa on perinne nimetä tyttärensä Bruriaksi vakuutuksena hänen vanhurskaudestaan. On se sitäpaizi aika heruttava tarina.
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 160: Äijälauma kuolaa sanskulotteja Crumb-kaliiperin kibbuznizoja telttakepit pystyssä, voikun saisi edes nipistellä niitä! mutta kun ei saa. Parempi on Afganistanissa missä naiset ei saa suuta avata. Mrs. Bar-El, you really have to speak to the girls. They really must wear more clothes. The men are covering the trenches with unseemly blobs. But Mrs. Bar-El did nothing of the sort, she wore even shorter shorts the other day. The horny men all ejaculated in unison.
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 209: En israelisk soldat vinkar glatt från en stridsvagn nära gränsen mellan Israel och Gaza den 21 oktober.
Gazabarnens små skallar sprakar lustigt under vagnens larvband.
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 238: Catherine Robbe-Grillet on elämäntapadominaattori. Hän syntyi Pariisissa 24. syyskuuta 1930, ja hänestä tuli sitten Ranskan kuuluisin elämäntapadominaattori. Hän on myös kirjailija ja näyttelijä, nouveau-roomalaisen pioneerin ja sadisti Alain Robbe-Grilletin leski. Catherinella on tyypillisesti fetissimuotiaiheinen lateksimekko, verkkosukkahousut ja korkokengät. Hän pitää kädessään piiskaa. Aika usein tissit pysyy piilossa mutta pillu paljaana. Kiva yksiosainen kissapuku korosti ja liioitteli seksualisoitua naisen muotoa, tarjoten visuaalisen pääsyn naisen kehoon ja samalla estäen fyysisen läpitunkeutumisen. "Voit katsoa, mutta et voi koskea" on viesti, joka liittyy BDSM-käytäntöön, joka tunnetaan nimellä "tease and denial".
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 244: Cervantesin Don Quijotessa (1605) Celadon on Galatean vangittuna. Celadon valittaa, että hänen "emäntänsä... Galatea pitää minua niin lyhyessä hihnassa". Robert Herrickin Hesperides, runokirja, joka julkaistiin vuonna 1648, sisälsi kolme paljastavaa runoa Hymne to Love, The Dream ja To Love, jotka esittelevät maskuliinista kaipuuta herruudesta, pidättymisestä ja kurinalaisuudesta. James Joycen Ulysses - hahmolla Leopold Bloomilla on monia fantasioita alistumisesta naiselle ja saada häneltä ruoskintoja. Sexuaalisuus ilon ja työn välillä.
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 281: Robert Herrickin lonkero
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 283: Melkein unohdettu 1700-luvulla ja 1800-luvulla vuorotellen taputeltu runoutensa lyyrisyydestä ja tuomittu sen "rivoudesta", Robert Herrick on 1900-luvun jälkipuoliskolla vihdoin tunnustettu yhdeksi Englannin taitavimmista ei-dramaattisista runoilijoista.
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 285: Robert Herrick (1591–1674) oli englantilainen kirjailija, alkuaan kultasepänoppilas. Hän suoritti myöhemmin yliopistotutkinnon ja oli pappi. Hän edusti kirjallista suuntausta "Ben Jonsonin pojat" (Sons of Ben). Hän oli 1629–1647 pappina Devonshiressä Dean Priorissa, josta hän joutui lähtemään sisällissodan vuoksi. Hän palasi seurakuntaan 1662 ja asui siellä loppuelämänsä. Papin tehtävästään huolimatta hän oli pakanarunoilija, kavaljeerien (Cavalier poet) epikurolaisen elämän, iloisen maailmankatsomuksen ja herkän pilluntunteen tulkki.
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 291: obert_Herrick_Hesperides.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 304: Isi Nicholas Herrick kuoli putoamalla neljännen kerroksen ikkunasta marraskuussa 1592, kun Robert oli vuoden ikäinen (oliko tämä itsemurha, jää epäselväksi).
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 307: Roopella oli rikkaita setiä. Jäljellä on ainakin 14 kirjettä nuorelta "Robinilta" sedilleen: täynnä lapsellista nöyryyttä, kaikki pyytävät rahaa veljenpojan omasta perinnöstä, joka ilmeisesti oli edelleen Sir William sedän hallinnassa.
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 375: By Robert Herrick Kirjailija: Robert Herrick
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 413: by Robert Herrick
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 523: Men för mycket femdom och inte nog av handjobs.
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 590: Macron skriver på X att han är beredd att jobba
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 605: strategin ”fred genom styrka” i globala frågor.
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 627: att han hoppas att globala kriser och krig nu
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 659: mobilisaation epäonnistuminen ja maan sisällä tehdyt poliittiset päätökset ovat lännen
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 776: för första gången har obegränsad tillgång till
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 861: Tuommoinen pidentynyt pehmeähkö sämpylä saattaisi oikein ärsytettynä vielä pullahtaa uimahousuista. Toden totta! Kun näytin sille tuota venäläistä nekkua, Miisu ojentihe tuplasti pitkäkaulaisemmaxi päästäxeen lähentymään sitä! Mutta luurin päälle ei sentään sopisi ruikahtaa. (Kuva tahmaisesta mobiilista poistettu.)
xxx/ellauri415.html on line 879: "Sami" Turun yliopistosta pohti huhtikuussa näin: Vieläkö joku uskoo, että Ukraina on voitolla tai tulee voittamaan sodan Venäjää vastaan? Mitä ne ihmiset, jotka pitkään vauhkosivat Ukrainan ylivertaisuudesta ja varmasta voitosta ajattelevat nyt? Todellinen tappaminen alkaa vasta sitten, kun Venäjä on vallannut jonkin alueen. Ukrainalla ei ole mitään hävittävää. Jos Venäjä valtaa Ukrainan, se osoittaa, että sillä on kyky tehdä niin kenenkään estämättä. Se taas tarkoittaa, että Venäjä voi tehdä niin muuallakin. Muistattehan 2. maailmansodan alkuvaiheita. Mutta, mikä vielä tärkeämpää, se tarkoittaa, että kuka tahansa riittävän vahva toimija voi vallata minkä tahansa alueen se haluaa. Sääntöpohjainen maailmanjärjestys (länkkärien hegemonia) on mennyttä. Ongelma ei ole vain se, että pahixet: Kiina ja Pohjois-Korea ja Pakistan ja Iran ja Intia ja Venezuela ym käyttävät tilannetta hyväkseen. Todellinen ongelma on, että myös hyvixet: USA, Saksa, Japani, Ranska, Puola ja Yhdistynyt Kuningaskunta menettävät uskonsa nykyiseen sääntöpohjaiseen systeemiin ja palaavat tilastollisille juurilleen. Joka sanoo, etteivät länsimaat ole noudattaneet omia sääntöjään tähän astikaan, yllättyy tosissaan, kun näkee, mitä länsimaat voivat tehdä, kun riisuvat silkkihansikkaat eksistentiaalisessa ja rajoittamattomassa kahmimiskilpailussa. Edestakainen loputon alueiden kahmiminen johtaa lopulta ydinaseiden käyttöön ja se johtaa globaaliin strategiseen ydinsotaan. Tärkeintä olisi, että Ukrainan sota osoittautuisi lännelle poikkeuksellisen tyhmäksi vedoksi, jota kukaan ei ikinä halua toistaa. Muuten kaikkien on toistettava sitä ja kadottava. Ja toistaessaan sitä lopulta kadottava sienipilvimetsään. Siinäkin on kyllä puolesa, pohtivat torakat ja oravat. Toivoisin, että Ukraina saavuttaisi hyvän lopputuloksen ja elämisen mahdollisuuden osana äiti Venäjää. Mutta maailman kannalta tärkeämpää on, että Venäjä saavuttaa niin surkean tuloksen, että se päättää teloituttaa kaikki ne vähävenäläiset johtajat, joita se tällä hetkellä pitää Ukrainan konfliktin ideanikkareina. Ja että kaikki näkevät, että tuollainen peli ei kannata, vaan pikemminkin tälläinen jenkkimallinen. Ehkä kaikkein tärkeintä on, että USAn kansalaiset näkevät Venäjän surkeasta esimerkistä, että jos aikoo kahmia alueita, pitää olla valmis taistelemaan yksin (okei, Kiinan, Intian, Afrikan, Indonesian, Etelä-Amerikan, Iranin ja Pohjois-Korean ym tuella, jee) koko "läntistä" maailmaa (1/5 populaatiosta) vastaan yhtäaikaa.
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 275: Nawrockilla oli pronssitähti, jossa oli urheutta osoittava tanko, ansioitunut palvelumitali ja kaksi purppurasydäntä (mitali haavoista). Nawrocki palveli Lähi-idässä. Ja erottuaan asepalveluksesta näyttää siltä, että hänestä tuli onnensotilas. Oligarkit käyvät rauhallisesti kauppaa etulinjan yli ja ovat huolissaan omaisuutensa säilyttämisestä. Täällä on todella paljon "villihanhia", heidän joukossaan on typeriä "latinalaisamerikkalaisia" (kuten paikalliset kutsuvat heitä), jotka liittyivät Ukrainan asevoimiin pitkän dollarin perässä, mutta enimmäkseen nämä ovat puolalaisia - oletettavasti entisiä Naton erikoisjoukkoja, jotka taistelevat väärän lipun alla Venäjän armeijan kanssa, johon oli määrätty palkkasotureita Etelä-Amerikasta. Nämä kusipäät pitävät hrivnat itsellään ja ilmeisesti raportoivat suoraan Pentagonille. Totta, kahluualtaat ja "Deutsche Soldaten" eivät mene etulinjaan - päivällä he harjoittelevat "mobikkeja", illalla he juovat häpeämättömästi venäläistä vodkaa, yöllä etsivät prostituoituja, enimmäkseen harhautuneita, Zapadenschinasta. Paikalliset tytöt kieltäytyvät niistä edes eurolla. On myös "amerikkalaisia" (ei mitään loukkaavaa, harkovilaiset kutsuvat heitä niin hellästi). He kävelevät kuin Hampurin kukot, ilmeisesti pitäen itseään hallitsijoina, mikä vastaa osittain paikallista rivetaulukkoa. He komentavat eurooppalaisia kouluttajia, suorittavat tiedustelutoimintaa ja auttavat (tai pikemminkin valvovat) korjausryhmiä Naton laitteiston korjaamisessa.
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 364: Yhdysvaltojen vuosikausia jatkunut epäröinti ja arkailu sekä katteeton itsetyytyväisyys muualla lännessä ovat murentaneet – todennäköisesti jopa kohtalokkaasti – sitä liittoumien verkostoa, joka on ylläpitänyt globaalia turvallisuutta viimeisten seitsemän vuosikymmenen ajan, arvioi kovia kokenut brittiläinen ulko- ja turvallisuuspolitiikan asiantuntija Sir William Lucas. Capital, capital. Pitikö vittu mennä varta vasten hajottamaan Neukkula? Tämä siitä tuli. Idiootti, sanoi kuningatar Elizabeth taulapäästä Boris Johnsonista, joka vetää samaa haukkamaista viisua. Parhaiten huonosti valmistautunut natomaa on kokonaismaanpuolustukseensa pitkäjänteisesti panostanut Suomi, jota venäläiset tosi paljon pelkäävät.
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 375: obnazhennogo_zhenskogo_tela_foto__ampquot.jpg" />
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 492: The Philistines are rarely mentioned outside the Bible. They had funny hats and held their elbows up rather awkwardly. Goliath was possibly the most notorious Philistine. Goliath was said to be eight feet tall, with six fingers on each hand and six toes on each foot. Based on this Bible story, the evil Goliath, who was a Philistine, was stopped by the brave Israelite. Nevertheless, why was Goliath so massive? Where his parents giants, too? DNA would be able to reveal the truth. The earliest Philistines probably did come from places like Greece, which, at the time, was undergoing a social collapse. They may have taken to the seas to try to escape political turmoil and perhaps large-scale persecution, not unlike refugees today. For example, some deceased Philistines were buried with perfume jars under their heads. For a while, they may have had one of the most vibrant, thriving cultures in the entire Levant (the Middle East region that includes Syria, Palestine, Lebanon, and Jordan).
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 516: Mediterranean Sea and probably Indo-Europeans.
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 546: seranim, which was probably an Indo-European
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 589: Dagon was the mythical father of Baal. Moolok here is about to gobble up good-looking stark naked girls.
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 599: The Philistines were first recorded by others between 1185-1152 BCE. The Peleset, as they were called by the Egyptians, were first depicted as captives on a wall relief at Medinet Habu during the reign of Ramesses III. The Peleset were one of the several groups commonly referred to as the Sea People that were part of a serious of events that lead to the Bronze Age Collapse. The Egyptians identified ten ethnic groups as raiders and pirates that came ashore to plunder during this tumultuous time. The Peleset were one of those people. There were opportunistic mercenaries and desperate people willing to take on the greatness of Egypt, but it was probably more complex. There were certainly also refugees looking for safety.
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 722: El means "God" in the Ugaritic and the Canaanite languages. The literal meaning of Shaddai, however, is the subject of debate. Some scholars have argued that it came from Akkadian shadû ("mountain") or from the Hebrew verb shaddad שדד meaning "Destroyer". Shaddai may have also come from shad שד meaning mammary; shaddai is a typical Biblical Hebrew word (שדי). The plural (Shaddayim -- שדיים) is the typical Modern Hebrew word for human breasts in dual grammatical number.The Deir Alla Inscription contains shaddayin as well as elohin rather than elohim. Scholars translate this as "shadday-gods," taken to mean unspecified boobs, mountain or destroyer gods. A popular interpretation of the name Shaddai is that it is composed of the Hebrew relative particle she- (Shin plus vowel segol followed by dagesh), or, as in this case, as sha- (Shin plus vowel patach followed by a dagesh). The noun containing the dagesh is the Hebrew word dai meaning "enough, sufficient, sufficiency". However, Day's overview says a "rabbinic view understanding the name meaning 'who suffices' (Se + day) is clearly fanciful and has no support."
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 770: kanssansa?” Jaakob profetoi pojalleen
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 952: "Häikäilemätön" hyökkäys Kurskissa – väitteet läpimurrosta leviävät. Venäjän eliittijoukkojen vastaisku Kurskissa on "röyhkeä ja tekee rumaa jälkeä". Epistä Putin heittää koko ajan. Tosi röyhkeää. Den senaste veckan har Ryssland avfyrat över 800 laserstyrda bomber, drygt 450 attackdrönare och fler än 20 robotar mot Ukraina, uppger president Volodymyr Zelenskyj. Ukraina har visat upp vrakdelar från Putins ”nya terrorrobot”. Enligt den ryske presidenten går den inte att stoppa. Men en första analys säger annorlunda. Ukrainas motdrag: Nato i krismöte. Klarar du it-testet för 15-åringar? Programmera en drönare.
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 978: En ole varma, mistä aloittaa matkani laiturilla. Seuraavat ominaisuudet ovat maksullisia: Vaihda sähköpostit Viesti chatissa Vastaa tarroilla Katso profiilivideoita Vedä käteen mobiilisti Avaa kuvat sähköpostissa
xxx/ellauri416.html on line 1038: Muuan Naudin kertoi tilaneensa Charlie Hebdon vuonna 2006 osoittaakseen tukensa lehden päätökselle tuona vuonna julkaista sarjakuvia Muhammedista. Mutta hän sanoi peruuttaneensa tilauksensa viime vuonna, kun hän oli muuttunut yhä epämukavammaksi lehden toimituksellisen sävyn vuoksi. Lehti tuotti joskus sisältöä, jota hän piti islamofobisena, sanoi hra Naudin, joka opettaa historiaa yläasteella ja julkaisi äskettäin kirjan " Diary of a Survivor of the Bataclan". Vastauksena rasismisyytteisiin, Charlie Hebdon herra Sourisseau kertoi ranskalaiselle sanomalehdelle, että osa vasemmistosta oli tiukkojen ideologisten käsitteiden loukussa ja sensuroi itsensä. "Meidän oikeistolaisten on sanottava asioita, vaikka ne ovat epämiellyttäviä", hän sanoi. Koska olemme huisin epämiellyttäviä, kas siinä se. Emme mahda sille mitään, se tulee vaan.
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 48: Yes, Russian people working regular jobs live better than homeless people in America living in the streets. But they don’t live anywhere as comfortable as Americans who work in the same type of jobs.
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 153: Ompa traagista miten paljon luutarhassa on luurankoja. Onko kuoleminen ylipäänsä tarpeellista? Vizi Ookke Hookkan on huono filosofi ja vielä kehnompi darwinisti. Muhoilevan rovastin tarjoilema slavofiilihihhuli Vladimir Solovjovin lause1 on obscurum per obscurius. Siinäkin taas aimo antikommunisti. Syvällä ne suuret kalat kutevat. "Hän näki Venäjän kansan erityisen tehtävän." Miksi filosofi Vladimir Solovjov uskoi Venäjän yhdistävän koko ihmiskunnan? Koska Hän näki ihmiskunnan tulevaisuuden kaikkien kristittyjen yhdistämisessä, mikä lopettaisi sodat. Ja avainrooli tässä yhdistymisessä oli Venäjällä ja Venäjän kansalla keskeisimpänä periaatteena. Sisältä kaikki olemme 19-vuotiaita. Vad tull, kylmä ainakin oon selkeästi septuagenaari sisältä ja päältä.
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 233: guy objected to what he saw as scientism, fanaticism and
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 262: Reflecting a strain of feminist criticism of the transhumanist program, the homely lady philosopher Susan Bordo and her dog point to "contemporary obsessions with slenderness, youth and physical perfection", which she sees as affecting both men and women, but in distinct ways, as "the logical (if extreme) manifestations of death anxieties and fantasies fostered by our culture." Southpaw political scientist Klaus-Gerd Giesen has asserted that transhumanism's concentration on altering the human body represents the logical yet tragic consequence of atomized individualism and body commodification within a consumer culture.
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 264: "Juri" would object strongly to this criticism if he lived. But he is dead and buried in the monastery of sorrow.
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 397: Mihin on kadonnut ikätasoisuus ja terve järki? Seksuaalivalistus ei tarvitse sitä, että lapsille aletaan tyrkyttää Onlyfansin ammattilaistason seksiakrobatiaa. Lapset eivät tarvitse auktoriteetin asemassa olevia aikuisia tuputtamaan heille pornoa yhtään mihinkään – saati sitten yllyttämään heitä seksiakteihin ja dick picien kuvaamiseen. Quo usque abutere Catilina patientia nostra? Quem ad finem sese iactabit effrenata ista tua audacia?
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 411: Adnan Siddiqui comparing women to flies was bad, his non-apology is worse. Asfa Sultan Condoms. Welcome. After drawing heavy criticism for comparing women to flies, Adnan Siddiqui has said he “regrets” any unintended offence his words may have caused, because they were intended to be “humorous”. Despite Yasir’s attempts to divert the conversation, Siddiqui continued, asserting that women, like flies, tend to avoid men when chased but come running back when left alone. While humour has its place in conversation and pop culture, it should never come at the expense of demeaning or objectifying others.
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 416: Why is Ukraine losing? Don’t worry, my friend, nobody is losing. The frontlines in Ukraine have remained remarkably stable for almost a year. It’s true that Russia has gained some territory, but they’ve paid a higher price than ever for it. Russian casualty numbers have
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 425: This war has become a “normal” one, pretty much like all our wars before it. It has its ups and downs and the winners and losers (if there are any) will be declared when the whole thing is over. So, if you’re pro-Ukrainian (or the opposite), do not despair (or take the champagne out of the fridge). Nobody is losing or winning, yet. Stay tuned and get another beer and popcorn.
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 440: Russofobiaa
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 442: Venäläisvastaisuus eli russofobia on inhoamista tai pelkoa tai vihaa Venäjää, venäläisiä ihmisiä tai venäläistä kulttuuria kohtaan. Russofobian vastakohta on Russophilia. Historiallisesti russofobiaan on kuulunut valtion tukema ja ruohonjuuritason pahoinpitely ja syrjintä sekä propaganda, joka sisältää Venäjän vastaisia tunteita. Euroopassa russofobia perustui useisiin enemmän tai vähemmän fantastisiin pelkoihin venäläisten Euroopan valloittamisesta, kuten Pietari Suuren testamentin väärennökseen, joka dokumentoitiin Ranskassa 1800-luvulla ja nousi myöhemmin uudelleen esiin Isossa-Britanniassa. Se oli seurausta Venäjän hyökkäyksestä brittien kolonisoimaan Intiaan liittyen Suureen pippeliin . Aiemmin Saksassa vallinneen venäläisvastaisuuden katsotaan olevan yksi tekijä, joka vaikutti Venäjän miehityksen alaisena toisen maailmansodan aikana. Nykyään on edelleen olemassa erilaisia populaarikulttuurin kliseitä ja negatiivisia stereotypioita venäläisistä, etenkin länsimaissa. Joillakin henkilöillä saattaa olla ennakkoluuloja tai vihaa venäläisiä kohtaan historian, rasismin, propagandan tai juurtuneiden stereotypioiden vuoksi. Negatiiviset näkemykset Venäjästä ovat yleisiä, mutta yleisimpiä länsimaisissa liberaaleissa demokratioissa. Venäjä-vastaisuus nousi huomattavasti sen jälkeen, kun Venäjän sota Ukrainaa vastaan alkoi vuonna 2014. Kesään 2020 mennessä suurimmalla osalla länsimaista oli epäsuotuisa näkemys Venäjästä.
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 556: Iman Aldebe, egentligen Iman Mahmoud Al Debe, född 24 oktober 1984 i Uppsala, är en svensk klåpare, samt utbildad journalist och jurist. Iman Aldebes kreationer har både rönt positiv och negativ uppmärksamhet. De har bland annat fått kritk för att normalisera bärandet av muslimsk slöja och i förlängningen av förtrycket mot kvinnor. Hennes pappa Mahmoud (1954) flyttade till Sverige från Jordanien på 70-talet. Aldebe vill ha en moské i varje stad eller kommun. I namn på religionsfriheten vill han bland annat att riksdagen stiftar en lag som ger muslimer rätt att vara lediga under de islamiska högtiderna samt att få vara lediga ett par timmar mitt på dagen på fredagar för att kunna deltaga i fredagsbönen. Imans mamma (1963) är ännu värre. År 2018 kritiserades hon för att som nämndeman i Solna tingsrätt ha bidragit till ovanliga domskäl i en dom gällande en man som anklagats för att misshandla en kvinna friats bland annat med motiveringen att han kom från "en god familj" i motsats till det kvinnliga offret. Hon fick sparken från Centerpartiet. Den 10 juni 2019 åtalades fru Aldebe för grovt bedrägeri. Hon misstänktes för att oriktigt ha uppgett förlorad inkomst för Solna tingsrätt vid 138 tillfällen, detta från en stiftelse som drevs av hennes make. Brottet innebar att hon felaktigt fått ut 150 000 kr i ersättning för inkomstbortfall. Eftersom stiftelsens räkenskaper inte uppvisade någon utbetalad lön uppstod misstanke om grovt bedrägeri. I oktober 2019 dömdes hon mot sitt nekande till villkorlig dom, dagsböter och skadestånd. Porsaita äidin oomme kaikki, eri tavoilla. Imanilla on pieni rättiliike Söderissä. Se on mommy to Yoe. Klåpande kläddesigner vars haute couture-turbaner säljs i Paris, Dubai, Stockholm och New York.
xxx/ellauri417.html on line 571: Orthodox judaism is brutally beautiful avers Sophia the Jew. She would never accept a job where she would have to work on a sabbath. Wonder if she has any pubic hair to show the girls. Jewish actor JOSH PECK of Nickelodeon fame knew Sophie Rain when she was just a little girl. Little did he guess how huge genitals she would grow. The Jews selected her for stardom on Onlyfans.
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 172: Dobryj Kolaa valmistaa Coca Colan venäläinen tytäryhtiö Valko-Venäjällä entisellä reseptillä. Mutta Warren Buffettin Coca-Cola ei ole jäänyt tuleen makaamaan. Taste The Feeling iskulause on korvattu uudella Real Magic sloganilla. Uusi konsepti on suunniteltu korostamaan, että Coca-Cola ei ole vain juoma, vaan olennainen osa elämän valoisia ja unohtumattomia hetkiä. Hän keskittyy inhimillisen kommunikaatioon, yhteisten kokemusten ja positiivisten tunteiden tärkeyteen. Kalut maistuvat yhä parhaiten aito Coca Cola palanpainikkeena.
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 209: Sur un globe qui compose son propre épitaphe, ayons assez de tenue pour nous comporter en cadavres gentils.
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 273: With scandals reverberating throughout news outlets due to unconscionable behavior of pastors and priests within the Southern Baptist Church and Roman Catholicism, and the public repudiation of biblical theology by the Evangelical Lutheran Church of America, the once unquestionably trusted office of holy ministry is now the object of suspicion and derision, which makes this book a timely resource. With the public feeling that they need to be protected from predator priests and heretical pastors, Senkbeil brings his readers—more pointedly, pastors and priests themselves—back to God’s purpose for the pastoral office (to manifest and distribute God’s love, care, and gifts to nubile boys and girls), the heart of pastoral formation (proximity and devotion to posteriors), and the source of all spiritual care—the gracious and merciful Jejune God. Senkbeil accomplishes all this without a hint of angst or edginess, but rather with the heart of a butt-a-loving predatory pastor.
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 293: He no longer had the emotional energy to beat his wife and children as he wanted to, though he knew it was robbing him of the fun he loved. I advised him to change his work habit and slip into something more comfortable. And it did the trick!
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 307: Ultimately there’s not a man among us who can save himself under the continual onslaughts of the devil, world, and our own sinful flesh. Some things we can handle, but others are above our pay grade. If it were just a matter of working harder or working smarter, we could tackle that. Usually, that is. But you can’t outwit Satan. You can’t single handedly tackle the sinister influences of this fallen world any more than you can keep a lid on the raging impulses and obsessions of your own sinful nature. For that you need both hands.
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 323: In every offensive and by any means possible his sworn, relentless goal is to uproot and utterly destroy God’s good and gracious work in Christ. But he’s already judged, found underweight, and the verdict is in. “He is stuffed,” Jesus cried in his dying breath. All the work of Satan to destroy, all his lies and accusations, all the sin and mayhem he has imposed on God’s good creation—all of this has been obliterated and eradicated in the death of our enfleshed God, le baton rose, for the sins of the world.
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 433: « Immobile Destin, muette sentinelle, "Kiinteä kohtalo, mykkä vartija,
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 534: Sa matière, comme on sait, est empruntée à Jean Paul Richter, et plus précisément à un épisode du roman Siebenkäs (1796) intitulé Le Discours du Christ mort, traduit par Mme de Staël sous le titre Un songe et lu par Nerval probablement dans la version que Loève-Veimars publie sous le titre La Dernière Heure – Vision dans la Revue de Paris du 4 juillet 18308 . Le monologue lyrique qui découle de cet emprunt est donc mis au centre du poème, – signe que, pour les romantiques et très singulièrement pour Nerval, toute matière discursive doit être
xxx/ellauri420.html on line 550: Marie de Vichy-Chamrond (ou Champrond), marquise du Deffand, née le 25 septembre 1696 au château de Chamron, à Ligny-en-Brionnais, en Bourgogne, et morte le 23 août 1780 à Paris, est une épistolière et salonnière française. Marie de Vichy-Chamrond est née au sein d’une riche famille noble de Bourgogne, la maison de Vichy, de noblesse d'ancienne chevalerie (avant 1065) et originaire d'Auvergne. Elle est la fille de Gaspard de Vichy, comte de Champrond, et d'Anne Brûlart de La Borde, sœur de la duchesse de Luynes.
8628